《Cupid's Arrow hit me hard!》 Chapter 1 Chapter 1 Chapter 1 Wiltspoon¡¯s hot weather in October was a killer. Still, the mornings and evenings were eased by thete autumn breeze. Serenity Hunt got up first thing in the morning to make breakfast for her sister''s family of three before grabbing her birth certificate and slipping away in the silence. "We''re going Dutch from now on, and I¡¯m talking about everything - the living expenses, the mortgage, and auto loans! Your sister should be splitting the cost since she''s staying at our ce.Sure, she pays two thousand bucks a month, but it doesn¡¯t stretch very far.She''s basically mooching off us." Serenity overheard her brother-inw¡¯sment during the couple''s argumentst night.She had to move out of her sister''s ce. However, there was only one way to put her sister''s mind to rest, and that was to get married. Since Serenity wanted to tie the knot on short notice without ever having had a boyfriend, she decided to take up on Grandma May''s offer. Serenity had saved the olddy by chance and came to know that Grandma May was trying to marry off her grandson, Zachary York, who had trouble settling down. Twenty minutester, Serenity got off to her pit stop at City Hall. "Serenity." A familiar voice summoned her attention the moment she got out of the car.It was Grandma May. "Grandma May." As Serenity hurried over, she took notice of a towering yet distant figure standing next to Grandma May.He must be Zachary, her husband-to-be. Ata closer distance, Serenity was dumbstruck after getting a load of Zachary¡¯s face. ording to Grandma May, her eldest grandson, Zachary had no luck with thedies despite hitting thirty. Needless to say, Grandma May was worried sick. Serenity had always assumed that he must be hideous. After all, she heard that Zachary had a high-paying job up the corporatedder in a major group. Now that they had met face-to-face, Serenity realized that she got it all wrong. Zachary was attractive and carried himself with an air of aloofness. Standing next to Grandma May with a sour face, he appeared standoffish and gave off vibes to stay away from him. Serenity''s gaze strayed to a ck MPV parked nearby. Judging by the logo, it was a national car rather than some multimillion-dor vehicle. Serenity deduced that the economic difference between her and Zachary was not that far off.She and an old friend from school had started a bookshop at the entrance of Wiltspoon School. During her free time, Serenity would also knit little knick-knacks to sell online. The sales were not too bad. In a month, she could bring home a steady ie of twenty thousand dors. The same amount in Wiltspoon would position her among the white cors. That was why she could afford to hand her sister five thousand bucks for living expenses. Nevertheless, her brother-inw had no clue about her earnings. Serenity told her sister to pocket three thousand bucks and only disclose the remaining two thousand to her husband. "Serenity, this is my oldest grandson, Zachary. He''s a thirty-year-old man and can''t even get himself out there. Although he''s not the warmest person, he''s attentive and considerate. You saved my life, and we''ve known each other for three months. Trust me when I won''t rmend a bad man to you." Taking in his gran¡¯s description of him, Zachary looked askance at Serenity, icily and profoundly without saying a word. Perhaps he had grown immune to her grumbles. Serenity knew that Grandma May had three sons, and each gave her three grandsons, blessing her with nine grandsons. Since a granddaughter was missing in Grandma May¡¯s life, she sought that affinity with Serenity. Although blushing in the face, Serenity openly extended her right hand ta Zachary and introduced herself with a smile, "Hello, Mr.York. I''m Serenity Hunt." Zachary¡¯s prating gaze scanned Serenity from head to toe and back. With Nana clearing her throat, he reached out his right hand for a shake, albeit his voice reflected an icy tone. "Zachary." After the handshake, Zachary raised his left hand to look at the time before informing Serenity. "I¡¯m a busy man.Let''s get it done and over with." Serenity hummed in acknowledgment. Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Grandma May jumped in. "Go on inside to sort out the paperwork.I¡¯ll wait for you here." "Gran, get into the car.It''s a hot day out." Zachary said as he helped Nana into the car. Through his actions, Serenity was able to agree with Grandma May''s statement that Zachary might be callous, but his heart was in the right ce. Although they were strangers, Grandma May mentioned that Serenity could move out of her sister''s ce into a house Zachary owned and paid for in full after the marriage. It could reassure her sister that Serenity was in good hands and end the arguments in the house because of her. It was only a marriage of convenience. Soon, Zachary returned to Serenity¡¯s side and uttered, "Let''s go." "Sure." Serenity quietly followed him into City Hall. At the registry office, Zachary urged Serenity. "Ms.Hunt, you can still change your mind if you don''t want to go through with this.It doesn''t matter what my Nana says.Marriage is a hugemitment, not to be taken lightly." He was hoping Serenity had second thoughts. Because he had no intention to marry a woman he had only met. Chapter 2 Chapter 2 Chapter 2 "I won''t back out on a promise." It took Serenity a few days to consider before reaching a decision. Now that she had made up her mind, she was not going to go back on her word. There was nothing more Zachary could say at that point.He took out his document and ced it in front of the officer. Serenity did the same. The pair swiftly went through the formalities in less than ten minutes. Once the officer issued the marriage license, Zachary fished out a bunch of keys from his pocket and gave them to Serenity. He said, "The house I bought is in Brynfield.Nana told me that you own a bookshop near Wiltspoon School.My ce isn''t too far from your workce.It''ll take around ten minutes by bus. "Do you have a driver''s license? If you do, you can get a car.I can help with the down payment while you will be responsible for the monthly payment.It''ll be easier for you tomute to work. "I can get very busy at work, so you won''t see me much.There will be business trips too.Don''t mind me.Just look after yourself.I''ll wire the household expenses to you on the tenth of every month when the sry is out. "One more thing.For convenience¡¯s sake, we should keep our marriage a secret for the time being"Zachary must have held a high rank in the office because he went on and on without giving Serenity a chance to speak.Serenity only said yes to the marriage so she did not be the reason for arguments between her sister and her brother-inw. Marriage was Serenity''s ticket out of the house while still giving her sister peace of mind.It was only a marriage of convenience. With Zachary handing her the keys to the house, she dly epted them. "I have a driver''s license, but a car isn¡¯t in my ns right now.I usually get to work on an e-bike.I just reced the batteries on the bike, so it would be a shame not to ride it. "Urn...Mr.York, are we splitting the bills?" Despite her sister and brother-inw marrying for love, her brother-inw proposed to go Dutch as if her sister was taking advantage of him. It took a lot of time and effort to care for a child, get groceries, cook, and manage house chores. A man, who had never been through it himself, would think their wife had it easy at home with simply caring for a child, cooking, and cleaning. Since she and Zachary had never met prior to signing the papers, Serenity would feel more at ease if they went halves. Without a second thought, Zachary replied sullenly, "I have the means to support my wife and our little family.No need to share the costs." Serenity smiled. "Alright then." She was not one to freeload without contribution. Whatever was needed in the house, Serenity nned to pay it out of her pocket.Serenity was already saving on rent anyway. It was all about the give-and-take as well as mutual understanding to live together in harmony. Zachary lifted his left arm to look at the time before saying to Serenity, "I need to get back to work.You can take my car home or hail a cab.I''ll reimburse the fare.I''ll drive Nana to my brother''s." "That reminds me.Let''s exchange numbers to reach one another." Serenity took out her phone and saved his contact. "I''ll get a cab.I should leave you to your work." "Okay.Call me if you need me." Prior to leaving, Zachary gave her two hundred bucks for the cab, to which Serenity refused. However, she immediately grabbed the money when he scowled. Zachary walked on ahead instead of stepping out of City Hall together with Serenity as newlyweds.He made a beeline to his car. "Where''s my granddaughter-inw?" Seeing that only his grandson made it out, Grandma May asked skeptically, "You went in together.Why didn¡¯t you leave together? Did you change your mind or did Serenity change hers?" Zachary fastened his seat belt before pulling out the marriage license. Turning around, he gave the license to gran. "We got the papers.I need to hurry back for a meeting at the office.I gave her two hundred to get a cab. "Gran, l drive you up to the crossroad ahead.The bodyquard will take you home" "You shouldn''t ditch Serenity no matter how busy you are.Hold on.Don''t drive until Serenity is out.You can return to work once you take her back." Grandma May wanted to get off, but the door was locked. "Gran, I married her as you wished, but you can''t dictate everything else I do.I''m the one living with her, so it''s my call.I''ll observe on my own time and be the judge of her character.I won¡¯t make the marriage official if she doesn¡¯t pass the test."Grandma May murmured, "... Divorce is not an option in our family!" "Well, that depends on whether you''ve picked a wife who''s worth spending the rest of my days with." Zachary remarked as he started the car. "Punk! No husband would act like this.How could you drive away and abandon your bride right after you got married?" Grandma May knew that since her oldest grandson had made the biggest concession by marrying Serenity, he refused to budge in other matters. It was not like she could do anything about it.Her grandson might make Serenity a grass widow if Grandma May pushed him too far. Serenity would be the victim in all of this. Zachary let his Nana tear into him. He would make Serenity happy if she deserved it.Had she been lying to Nana and putting up a fagade, Zachary would divorce her six monthster. Serenity could still find another man since he kept the marriage under wraps and had no ns for sexual contact. After driving for ten minutes, he pulled over at an intersection. There were a few luxury sedans parked there. One of them was a Rolls Royce. Zachary pulled up by the road and got down from the car before tossing the keys to an awaiting bodyguard. He instructed, "Take the old Mrs.home." Property ? N?velDrama.Org. "I''m not going back.I want to stay with you and spend time with my new granddaughter-inw." Grandma May put up a fuss. Nevertheless, her darling grandson had got into the Rolls Royce, turning a deaf ear to her protests. She could only watch as her oldest grandson drove off in the luxury sedan. Zachary was, in fact, the mover and shaker of Wiltspoon''s corporate world. He was the heir to the richest family in Wiltspoon with a worth of a hundred billion! "Ruthless b*stard!" Grandma May cussed her grandson out and muttered under her breath bitterly, "I''ll wait for karma to strike when you fall in love with Serenity." No amount of anger could get her grandson back here. By the time Grandma May picked up the phone to call Serenity, thetter was sitting in a cab on her way home. "Serenity, Zack is swamped with work.Don''t take it to heart." Feeling the marriage license that was stuffed in her pocket, Serenity answered, "I can understand, Grandma May.I don''t mind it at all.Don¡¯t feel bad.He''s paying for my fare.I¡¯m already on my way home." "You''re married to Zack now.Am I still Grandma May to you?" Serenity was caught in a daze for a moment before calling her gran. The olddy happily epted the new title. "We''re a family now, Serenity.Tell me if Zack ever picks on you.I''ll have your back." It took forever for her grandson to get a wife.There was no way Grandma May would allow him to step all over Serenity. Chapter 3 Chapter 3 Chapter 3 "l will, Nana." Serenity casually responded.- Although Grandma May was nice to her, Zachary was her blood rtive while Serenity was only rted to the family by marriage. Serenity found it hard to believe that the Yorks would stand by Serenity during a conflict between her and Zachary. Such was the case with her sister''s parents-inw. Before marriage, the inws were nothing but good to Serenity¡¯s sister to the point their birth daughter was jealous. It was a different story after the wedding. Every time Serenity''s sister got into a disagreement with the husband, her mother-inw would get on Serenity''s sister''s case about being a bad wife. In short, the son was always family while the daughter-inw remained as an outsider. "You must be heading to work, so I should get out of your hair.I¡¯ll get Zack to get you home for dinner tonight." "Nana, I''m closing the shop prettyte at night.I probably won''t be able to make it.Can we reschedule for the weekend?" The school was off on weekends. Since the bookshops livelihood depended on students, business was slow on days when school was out. She would have time and no need to set up shop during such asions. "Sure." Grandma May thoughtfully added, "The weekend, it is.Go on with your work then." The olddy hung up the call. Instead of heading straight to the shop, Serenity sent a text message to her best friend, Jasmine Sox, that she would make it back before thest school bell rang. With one major milestone ticked off her list, Serenity had to let her sister know and move out of her ce. About ten minutester, Serenity arrived at her sister''s home. Her brother-inw had gone to work while her sister was hanging clothes out to dry on the balcony. Seeing that Serenity was home, her sister expressed her concern. "Why are you back at this hour, Seren? Is the shop closed today?" "I''ll go when it''s busy in the afternoon.Is Sonny awake yet?" Sonny was Serenity¡¯s nephew. The boy was currently in his Terrible Twos. "Not yet.The house won''t be this quiet if he¡¯s awake." Serenity asked aboutst night as she helped with theundry. "Seren, your brother-inw isn¡¯t trying to kick you out.He''s simply under a lot of stress.It''s not like I''m working." Liberty rified for her husband. Serenity kept to herself, knowing well that it was her brother-inw¡¯s covert attempt to throw her out.Her brother-inw earned a lot as a manager in a firm. Liberty met him in college and was working in the same firm. When they got married, the man lovingly said to Liberty, "I''ll take care of you. Just stay at home and rest. I need you rested and healthy if we''re going to have a baby." Believing she had found the right man, Liberty quit her job and became a housewife. She gave birth to a lovely son a year into the marriage and had na time to dress up between caring for a child and managing housework. Liberty paid no thought to watch her figure, nor could she break free from her routine and return to the workce. Fast forward three years, Liberty went from a young and beautiful woman to an overweight and unkempt housewife with no time to spare for herself. Serenity was five years younger than her sister. Their parents passed away from a car ident when Serenity was ten. Since then, Serenity and Liberty only had each other. Thepensation from their parents¡¯ ident would have been enough for the sisters toplete their studies, but the grandparents from both sides of the family wanted a piece of it. With what was left, the sisters had to scrimp and save to pull through college. Since the grandparents proceeded to hag the family home, Serenity and her sister resorted to renting. Their renting days were finally over when Liberty walked down the aisle. Liberty absolutely adored Serenity and talked to her then husband-to-be about living with Serenity after marriage. The man was quick to say yes about taking Liberty and Serenity as a one-package deal, but his resentment was beginning to rear its ugly head. "I''m sorry, Liberty.I¡¯m a burden to you." "No, Seren.Don''t think that way.Mom and Dad left us too soon.I''m all you got." Serenity was deeply moved. As a child, Serenity could always count on her sister, but now it was her turn to be Liberty''s rock. After a brief silence, Serenity took out the marriage license and showed it to Liberty. She said, "I¡¯m married, Liberty.I just signed the papers and came back to let you know.I''ll be packing up and moving out in a bit." "You got married?!" Liberty''s voice turned high pitch, almost to a screech. Staring at Serenity in disbelief, Liberty snatched the marriage license for a closer inspection. There was her sister''s name alongside a stranger''s name on the papers. Attached was a photo of the newlyweds. "What''s this about, Serenity? I thought you didn¡¯t even have a boyfriend." The man in the photo was good-looking, but his piercing eyes and callous lines along his facial features were telltale signs that he would not be the easiest person to get along with. While on the way back, Serenity had a story all thought out. She answered, "I have been in a rtionship for quite some time.His name is Zachary.He was always busy with work, so he could never make time toe meet you. "He proposed, and I said yes.Then, we went to get our marriage license at City Hall.He''s a great man, Liberty.He''s good to me.Don''t worry.I''ll have my happily-ever-after." Liberty had a hard time buying the story.She had never heard of a boyfriend in Serenity¡¯s life.Yet, the latter was telling her now that she got a ring on her finger. Serenity must have overheard the fightst night. Upset, Liberty teared up and remarked, "Seren, I told your brother-inw you paid for groceries.Feel free to stay with us. "There''s no need to rush to marry or move out." Liberty bet Serenity had not known her boyfriend for long. Otherwise, Serenity would not have waited until now to tell her. The sudden decision to get a marriage license was because Liberty''s husband believed Serenity overstayed her wee. Serenity was in a hurry to give herself away before Liberty''s marriage was on the rocks. With a smile, Serenityforted her sister. "Liberty, you got nothing to do with it.My rtionship with Zachary is very strong.I got my happy ending.You should be happy for me." Liberty could not stop the tears from rolling down her cheeks. Serenity helplessly embraced her sister until Liberty cried her heart out and calmed down.Serenity made a promise to Liberty. "I''ll visit you often, Liberty.Zachary¡¯s house is in Brynfield, not far from yours.It takes me ten minutes on the e-bike." "What''s the situation with his family?" As the marriage was sealed, Liberty had no choice but to ept it.She went on to dig further about her new brother-inw. Serenity did not know much about the Yorks. Although she had known Grandma May for three months, Serenity never pried into the family¡¯s private affair and often lent an ear to Grandma May. All she knew was that Zachary was the oldest in the family and had a lot of younger brothers including cousins. Zachary had a job in one of Wiltspoon¡¯s finestpanies.He was doing pretty well for himself as he owned a house and car. Serenity told the little information she knew to her sister. Having heard that Zachary had no debt on the house, Liberty asked, "That''s his prenuptial property.Seren, can you get him to add your name to the title deed?" Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. At least, Serenity would be covered if her name was on the deed. Chapter 4 Chapter 4 Chapter 4 "Yau said it yourself, Liberty.It''s his prenuptial property.It doesn''t make sense to add my name to the title deed since I didn¡¯t pay a penny for the house.I think we should forget about it." Zachary did Serenity a huge favor by handing her the key to the house the moment they got married. She could move in right away, solving her housing predicament.- Serenity was not going to request that of Zachary. Of course, she would not refuse if Zachary added her name on his own ord. Now that they were husband and wife, Serenity made up her mind to spend the rest of her life with him. Liberty had to at least bring it up. Knowing that her sister was self-reliant and not driven by greed, Liberty did not dwell on the matter. After a series of interrogations, Serenity sessfully moved out of her sister''s ce. Liberty wanted to drop her off at Brynfield, but Sonny happened to wake up. The little guy was crying for his mama the moment he opened his eyes. "You should attend to Sonny.I don¡¯t have a lot of stuff.I can move them myself." Liberty needed to feed her son and get a start on lunch. Her husband would call her out for doing nothing at home should he return with no food on the table. Left with no choice, Liberty said, "Be careful on the road.Are youing here for lunch? Bring your husband along." "I need to get to the shop in the afternoon, so I can¡¯t make it for lunch.My husband has his te full at work.He''s going away for business in the afternoon, so it might be some time before I can bring him to meet you." Serenity lied. She knew nothing about Zachary, but Grandma May mentioned that his life revolved around work. He would sometimes go out of town for business, away for days on end. Without a concrete idea of when Zachary would be free, Serenity did not make amitment in case she could not keep it. "He''s going on a business trip the same day he got married." Liberty found Zachary to be inconsiderate toward Serenity. "We''ve only got our marriage license and not the wedding.The way I see it.He should go on these trips and make more money since the expenses will pile up.I should get going, Liberty.Go and feed Sonny." Serenity waved her sister and nephew goodbye before hauling her suitcase down the stairs.She had heard about Brynfield but never entered the neighborhood before.She hailed a cab and went straight to Brynfield. Once there, it then urred to Serenity that she forgot to ask Zachary the floor his ce was on. Serenity pulled out her phone to call Zachary, but he might not pick up since he was at work. Still, she decided to call him through WhatsApp. Zachary was in a meeting.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Everybody in the conference room had set their phones to silent mode as no personal calls could be taken during this time.He had also muted his phone. As his phone was put on the table, Zachary quickly noticed the iing call from Serenity. Zachary did not save her contact when they exchanged numbers. With Serenity''s profile name, "Mermaid in the Deep Blue Sea" popping out on WhatsApp, Zachary canceled the unidentified call without a second thought. He then cklisted Serenity¡¯s number. In the dark about Zachary¡¯s act, Serenity went on to try messaging since he was not picking up. She asked, ¡®Mr.York, I''m at Brynfields now, but I don¡¯t know which floor your ce is on." Serenity typed the message and tapped send, only to find out that her text could not reach the number. She stared nkly at the screen of her phone. "Why can''t I reach his number? We exchanged numbers at City Hall.Did I get the number wrong?" Serenity mumbled to herself as she thought hard and long about whether there was a gap in her memory. Having determined she got the right number, Serenity arrived at one possibility - Zachary had cklisted her number. Did he forget that they just got married? Truth be told, Serenity would notst two days before she drew a nk about her husband had she stayed put in her sister''s house. Serenityter called Grandma May. After reaching Grandma May on the phone, Serenity uttered, "Nana, I moved out of my sister''s ce, and I''m now at Brynfield, but I don''t know Mr.York''s...Uh...Do you know what floor Zachary¡¯s ce is on?" Grandma York, "..." "Hang on, Serenity.I''ll call Zack right now." The olddy had no clue either. The house and car were bought recently so Zachary could vet Serenity out. Grandma May only found out now that her oldest grandson bought a house at Brynfield after the couple got their marriage license. Grandma May ended the call and wasted no time getting ahold of Zachary. After cklisting his bride''s number, Zachary put the phone back on the table and carried on with the meeting. Less than three minutester, his mobile screen lit up. Seeing that it was Nana, Zachary epted the call. "I''m in a meeting, Nana." Zachary¡¯s husky voice came through. "Anything can wait until I get home." "Zack, what''s the unit number of the ce you bought at Brynfield? Serenity''s there now, but she doesn''t know where the ce is specifically.Don''t you have her number? Go and tell her." Zachary raised his sleek brow. Oh. Now he remembered. He got hitched today to a woman he had never met but Nana was deeply fond of. He believed her name was Serenity. Moments ago, Zachary had cklisted his wife''s number. "Nana, tell her it''s apartment 808 on the eighth floor of Block B." "Sure.I''ll let her know.Carry on with your meeting." The olddy was a brisk character, hanging up the call and passing the message to Serenity. Zachary stared at his phone in silence for a moment before taking Serenity out of the banned contacts.He saved Serenity''s contact and sent her an apologetic text message. "I''m sorry.I forgot who you were earlier." Serenity did not take the incident to heart. Grandma May''s sons and daughters-inw thanked Serenity personally when thetter saved their mother''s life. By the time the grandchildren made it to the hospital for a visit, Serenity was long gone. Hence, it was hard for Zachary to keep track of a stranger like Serenity. Even though Nana had mentioned Serenity more than a few times, Zachary paid no mind and attached no importance to it.He could barely remember Serenity''s name. Serenity texted back. ¡®It''s fine.Just do your thing.I''m moving my stuff up the stairs¡¯ "Do you need help?" "I only have a suitcase.I can move it myself.Besides, are you going toe back and help if I really need it?" Zachary was honest in his reply. "No." He had a busy schedule. How could he find the time to help her move? Serenity responded with a cryughing emoji before going radio silence. She did not want to get in the way of his work. Zachary had also quit the messaging. There was nothing to talk about since they hardly knew each other. His only hope was for a docile wife who would not trouble him over the pettiest things. He had no time to give her the time of the day. cing his phone back on the table, Zachary lifted his head and noticed that all eyes were on him. Chapter 5 Chapter 5 Chapter 5 Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. With his game face on, Zachary said, "Back to the meeting" Sitting nearest to Zachary was his cousin, Callum. Among the cousins within the same age range as Zachary, Callum ranked second. Callum drew close and whispered, "Zack, I overheard your conversation with Nana.Did you really marry that Ser- girl?" Zachary shot him a re. Scratching his nose, Callum straightened his back and ended the probing. Even so, Callum had nothing but sympathy for Zachary. There was no need for the York boys to secure social and financial standing through marriage, but Zack and his new bride were not a match in every single way. Poor Zack. He merely married the girl because Nana took a liking to her. Once again, Callum offered Zachary his deepest sympathy through his thoughts. Thank goodness Callum was not the oldest in the family. Otherwise, he would have to step up to the te and marry Nana''s lifesaver. Unaware of all that, Serenity got the location details and was busy dragging her suitcase to get to her new home. She opened the door only to step into a spacious house. The ce was bigger and more decked out than her sister''s house. Putting down her suitcase, Serenity started by looking around the ce. This was her home from now on. It had two living areas, four bedrooms, one kitchen, two bathrooms, and two balconies. Each space was broad and wide. Serenity estimated the entire house to be at least two thousand square feet. The ce was barely furnished as there was only a sofa set with a coffee table, and a wine chiller in the living room. Two out of four bedrooms were equipped with a bed and wardrobe while the other two were empty. The master bedroom had en-suite facilities,plete with a walk-in closet, study, and bathroom. Despite the divided space, the master bedroom remained huge like the living hall. This must be Zachary¡¯s space. Serenity chose to live in the other room with a bed. The sunlight that came from the balcony brightened up the room. There was a room in between the master bedroom and the bedroom Serenity chose. This way, the newlyweds could enjoy their personal space. Although they were married in the eyes of thew, Serenity would not propose spending time as a married couple unless Zachary asked for it. After dragging her suitcase to the bedroom, Serenity went into the kitchen. The kitchen was squeaky clean without kitchenware in sight. Both balconies were also bare but gave a roomy feeling due to the vast space. Serenity intended to spruce up the balcony with some nts and a swing. Nothing beat reading a book and taking in the botanic view on a swing during her free time. It appeared Zachary was rarely home for dinner. Now that she was upying the space, home-cooked meals were a must. Serenity started with the kitchen by purchasing kitchen utensils online. As for nts on the balcony and other furniture, she wanted to get Zachary¡¯s take on it when he got home from work. It was his house after all while she was simply crashing here. After cing an order on kitchen tools, Serenity looked at the time and needed to return to the shop. Picking up the keys, she grabbed her phone and rushed down the stairs. Serenity made it back to the shop in time for the afterschool rush. Her best friend, Jasmine, inquired out of concern. "What were you up to in the morning, Seren?" "My sister and brother-inw have been in constant argument because of me.I thought about it and decided to move out." Serenity shrugged. "So I moved out this morning." Her best friend''s brother-inw was something else. Jasmine sighed. "Men love to tell women that they would take care of them, but when ites down to it, they''re the ones nagging and finding faults. After marriage, we, women, have to put family above all while grinning through misunderstandings. It''s so unfair. I think your sister should find a job! Women must always be financially independent so we have a say in the household." While speaking, Jasmine suddenly furrowed her brows and gave Serenity a confused look. "I can''t believe your sister let you move out." "I got married." "Oh...What? You got married? You don¡¯t even have a boyfriend.Who did you marry?" Jasmine''¡¯s mindless nodding was ensued with shock as she stared at Serenity wide-eyed.Her voice went high-pitch too. Knowing that she could not keep the news from Jasmine, Serenity came clean about the whole thing. Jasmine red at Serenity for a while before poking thetter''s forehead. "I don''t know where you find the guts to marry someone you met for the first time.You could''ve stayed with me if you couldn''t find a ce.I have extra rooms at my ce.You could¡¯ve also picked my cousin if you were looking for a husband." Chapter 6 Chapter 6 Chapter 6 Serenity said with a smile, "What do I need your cousin for? He has a girlfriend.It''s toote now because the papers are signed! Keep it between us and don¡¯t let my sister know.I don''t want her to be sad." Jasmine was speechless.Her best friend sure pulled one heck of a move. "There are all those Lifetime movies and romance novels about blindly marrying a multi- billionaire.Maybe that¡¯s the case with you too, Seren" Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Smacking her best friend in the head, Serenity remarked with a grin, "I bet you read all the chick lit in the shop.Dream on about marrying a billionaire at first sight.Do you think the ce is crawling with billionaires?" Jasmine rubbed on the bump and sighed as Serenity had a point. Jasmine then asked, "Where''s your husband''s ce?" "Brynfield"" "Not bad.It''s a good neighborhood and easily essible.Plus, it''s not far from our shop.Where does your husband work? He must earn a lot of money since he bought a house in Wiltspoon and in an expensive neighborhood like Brynfield. What are his wages like? Do you need help with the mortgage? "Seren, get your name on the title deed if he wants you to contribute to the mortgage.It''s to protect yourself.Not to jinx it but you won''t get anything when you guys fall out and divorce since it''s a prenuptial property." Studying her best friend''s face, Serenity answered, "You sound like my sister.He bought and paid the house in full, so there''s no mortgage.I don''t think it''s nice to put my name on the title deed when I didn¡¯t spend a dime onit" Jasmine replied, "It won''t matter if the husband and wife get along." It struck Serenity that her brother-inw bought the family house before marriage.He was also paying the monthly house loan, but the renovation was paid with Liberty''s money. Still, Liberty was not named on the property deed. With her mind harking back to her brother-inw using Liberty of blowing cash, Serenity began to worry about her sister.She ought to bring it up to her sister one of these days. Serenity closed the shop at eleven o''clock at night. Since Jasmine''s home was nearby and a family member was buying her dinner, Serenity told Jasmine to get on home. Having shut the main door, Serenity took out her keys and walked to her e-bike. She rode for twenty minutes until she arrived downstairs at her sister''s ce. It was only when Serenity parked the bike that she realized she no longer lived there. Lifting her head, Serenity nced at the floor her sister was on and found that the lights were out. Although feeling down, Serenity left the family of three to be and rode her e-bike into the night. It was midnight by the time she reached Brynfield. She was weed by darkness as she pushed the door and entered the house. It did not feel like anyone lived in this space. Grabbing her pajamas from the suitcase, Serenity took a hot shower and allowed the weariness to rock her to sleep. Meanwhile, nked by bodyguards, Zachary walked out of the Wiltspoon Hotel, which was owned by his family. He had just closed a big deal with a major client and arranged for the client to stay in the presidential suite. With his new wifeing into mind, Zachary decided to take a trip home. "Sir, will it be the estate or the hilltop vi?" The estate was the Yorks¡¯ family home while the vi on the hill was a property belonging to Zachary. His permanent domicile was the vi, but he would catch up and have dinner with the elders of the family at the estate every now and then."To Brynfield." Chapter 7 Chapter 7 Chapter 7 Zachary got into the Rolls Royce and instructed in a husky voice, "Don''t forget to bring around the national car I bought." It was a facade to fool his wife. What was his wife called again? "Oh, right.What''s the name of the missus again?" Zachary could not be bothered to dig out the marriage license. Oh, it was likely Nana did not return it to him after he showed her. Anyhow, the marriage license was not with him. The bodyguard replied, "...The young missus is Serenity Hunt.She''s twenty-five this year.You might want to remember that." Mr.Zachary had an exceptional memory, but when it came to people who he was not fond of, he jammed them out. This was especially true with women. He probably would not know thedy''s name even if they met every day. "Sure.Got it." Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Zachary responded offhandedly. Judging by Zachary''s tone, the bodyguard knew he would not be bothered to learn the young missus¡¯ name. Refusing to waste more brain cells on Serenity, Zachary slumped against the seat and rested his eyes. The journey from Wiltspoon Hotel to Brynfield took ten minutes. With the luxury sedan convoy stopping at the neighborhood gate, Zachary proceeded to drive the national MPV into the neighborhood. Although he could not remember his bride''s name, Zachary was not going to forget about the property he bought. Soon, he arrived at the entrance to his home and took notice of a pair of familiar slippers at the door. They seemed to be his. Why were they thrown out? It must be Serenity! Doing a slow burn, Zachary scrunched up his chiseled face. He was grateful to the girl for saving Nana at first, but all that good impression was lost following Nana''s constant praising of her and nagging to marry her. Now Zachary believed Serenity was a conniving person. Although he gave in to Nana to marry Serenity in the end, Zachary drew the line there. He nned to keep his identity hidden after marriage to be the judge of Serenity¡¯s character. If Serenity passed the test, he would ept her as his wife forever. If he were to find out that she was a scheming woman, then she should get what wasing. No good ever came to those who yed games with Zachary. Whipping out his keys, Zachary tried to unlock the door, but his attempt was futile. He was less than happy when he realized that the woman had locked him out. This was his house! He let her in, and yet she locked her out! Seeing red, Zachary lifted his foot and kicked the door. Bang! Zachary was also trying to get Serenity on the phone. Because of the earlier incident, Zachary saved Serenity¡¯s contact and added the spousal title for a reminder. Otherwise, it was likely that he would delete Serenity''s contact once more as he had trouble putting a face to her name. Serenity was startled awake by the kick on the door. Who was pounding the door in the middle of the night? How was she supposed to sleep? Serenity was a grump in the morning, not to mention now that she was woken up by the noise. Throwing off the covers, Serenity stormed out in her pajamas. Since her phone was in the room, she had no idea that Zachary called. "Who is it? Why are you knocking on my door when you should be sleeping?" Serenity opened the door as she ran her mouth at the guy standing outside. She was stumped the moment she got a good look at the person''s face. Serenity stared at Zachary''s face for a while before getting ahold of herself and putting on a smiling face. She embarrassedly uttered, "Oh, it''s you, Mr.York." Zachary¡¯s rage was already on an all-time high as she did not pick up his call. Brushing Serenity off, Zachary walked past her and entered the house with a sour face. Serenity stuck her tongue out behind his back. This was the aftereffect of marrying at first sight. She popped her head out the door to look. It was a good thing the neighbors were not awakened by Zachary¡¯s vigorous mming. Spotting the slippers by the door, Serenity bent over to put them back inside the house before locking the door behind her. "I got home at midnight. I thought you wouldn''t being back since you weren''t home by then. That''s why I locked the door." Serenity exined. "I was alone at home, so I thought I should put your slippers at the door just to be safe. People will know there''s a man in the house if they see a man¡¯s slippers. They wouldn''t dare try anything." No bad guys scared Serenity as she practiced self-defense. Nevertheless, it did not stop Serenity from putting home safety measures into ce. Sitting on the sofa, Zachary stared icily at her with dead-pan yet Prating eyes. The nights in October were chilly, to begin with. Not only did Serenity feel the chill from his piercing re, but it also felt like winter was brought forward. It was freezing! "I''m sorry, Mr.York." Serenity brought his slippers over and ced them by his feet while apologizing. She should have called to ask if he wasing back. It took a while before Zachary coldly blurted, "I said not to mind me, but this is my home.I¡¯m not happy that you locked me out." "I''m sorry, Mr.York.I''m sorry.Next time, I¡¯ll call in advance to check if you''reing back.I''ll lock the door if you have no ns to return." After a brief silence, Zachary uttered, "I''ll inform you when I''m going on business trips.I''ll be home every day unless I tell you otherwise.Don''t call me.I¡¯m a busy man.I don''t have time to take your tiresome calls." "Oh, Serenity answered.He could have thest say since this was his ce anyway.He was the boss. "Mr.York, do you want any supper?" Since Zachary worked untilte, Serenity thought he must be hungry. Hence, she asked out of kindness. "I don¡¯t have the habit of midnight snacking.It''s fattening." Chapter 8 Chapter 8 Chapter 8 Zachary was careful to watch his weight, refusing to let himself go and be overweight.It was hard to shed the pounds.Serenity smiled. "You''re fit, Mr.York."So...I guess I''ll go back to bed?" "Sure" Zachary replied. "Goodnight." Serenity wished him goodnight before turning on her heel to leave. "Hang on, Se...Serenity." Zachary called after her. Pausing, Serenity turned her head around and asked, "Yes?" Zachary looked at her and said, "Please don¡¯t walk around in your pajamas next time." She was not wearing a bra underneath her pajamas.Unfortunately, his eagle eyes picked up on that. They were husband and wife anyway, but what if someone else caught her in her pajamas? Thest thing he wanted was for other men to see his wife''s body. Red in the face, Serenity bolted back to her room and mmed the door shut. Zachary was speechless.She was embarrassed before he could feel awkward for her. Zachary took a moment to sit before heading to the master bedroom. He bought the furnished house at thest minute. It was move-in ready. Nevertheless, his bedroom had not been sorted out due to the rush. He was quite impressed that Serenity knew how to take a hint instead of brazenly demanding to sleep in the same room. Thank goodness fulfillment of marital obligations was not asked of him. The wee hours of the morning went by uneventfully for the married couple. The next day, Serenity woke up at six o''clock in the morning as usual. Prior to this, she would make breakfast and tidy up the ce after she got up. If time permitted, she would help her sister hang theundry out to dry. Serenity had taken the role of a nanny in the years she stayed at Liberty''s ce, mainly because she was trying to lighten the load off her sister. However, her brother-inw took it for granted and ordered her around like a nanny. She woke up today and stared at the unfamiliar bedroom that she spent the night in. As memories flooded back into her mind, Serenity murmured, "I must be half-asleep to think I¡¯m still at my sister''s ce.This is my home.I don''t have to get up now." Serenityid back down to return to dreand.It was a shame that she could not adjust her body clock though. Serenity could not sleep in even if she tried.She might as well get up since her tummy was rumbling. After a change of clothes and a wash-up, Serenity walked out of her room and took a nce at Zachary¡¯s bedroom door. By the looks of the closed door, he must still be sleeping. Well, it was hard to get up at this hour since he was hometest night. Serenity wandered into the kitchen and stared at the empty room. A brief silenceter, she turned around and made her way out.She had ced an order for kitchenware yesterday, but the stuff had not arrived. Had she known, Serenity would have bought them in a store rather than online. While moving house yesterday, Serenity remembered seeing a breakfast ce in the neighborhood. Serenity decided to get breakfast takeouts.She wondered what Zachary fancied eating.It was not like she could wake him up and ask, so she bought a variety. Serenity got breakfast omelet, bacon, sausages, pancakes, and toast - the favorites of ordinary people in Wiltspoon. Zachary was an early riser despite staying up the night before. No sooner had Serenity gone out to get breakfast than he woke up. Unustomed to having a wife, he once again forgot about Serenity¡¯s existence and walked out bare- chested to get a ss of water. At that point in time, Serenity swung open the door to enter the house and their gazes met. The next thing she knew, Zachary locked his arms against his chest and ran back to his room like Serenity didst night. Dumbstruck at first, Serenity soon burst intoughter.She muttered to herself. ¡®There''s nothing interesting about a man¡¯s upper body.It''s nothing more than abs.I can''t believe he put his arms over his chest.Haha.That was so funny!¡¯ Awhileter, Zachary reemerged fully dressed in a suit.He did not look too pleased, but who was he to tell Serenity off? It was his fault for forgetting that a strange woman was in his living space now. The strange woman was also his wife on paper. Normally, Zachary stayed in his vi and would wake up to an empty second floor. So long as he remained upstairs, the maids would not enter his space. At times he would ditch the shirt when feeling cheeky. This was the case today, and the scheming girl saw his bare chest. "Mr.York, I got breakfast.Come and have them." Despiteughing her *ss off, Serenity did not forget the agenda at hand.She ced the breakfast variety on the dining table and called the man, who felt vited, over. Zachary stood in silence for a bit before heading over. He nced at the breakfast and callously asked, "Don''t you know how to cook?" "I do.I''m a good cook." "The store-bought breakfast, especially from the street stalls, is not very hygienic.You should cut down on that.You should make your own food since you can cook.It''s sanitary and safe." As the head of the York household, Zachary had never eaten breakfast favorites of Wiltspoonese. Serenity replied with a question, "Have you seen your kitchen? It''s cleaner than your face.It has nothing in there.Even if I''m the chef of a five-star hotel, I can''t pull a feast without tools and ingredients. Zachary was rendered speechless. "Are you going to eat it?" Serenity asked. Zachary was starving but tried to y it cool. He took a seat at the table and faintly said, "It''d be a waste not to eat since you already bought it.I guess having it once or twice won''t hurt." Way to save himself from embarrassment. Serenity split half of each dish to him. Taking a seat, she ate her share and remarked, "I looked around when I moved in yesterday.I ordered quite a bit of kitchen utensils online.I''ll get the groceries and cook when the things arrive, so you don''t have to eat street food." Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. He held a high position in a major corporation.She guessed white cors were particr about their food. Serenity had the habit of cooking at home and only ordered takeout when she was at the shop.She was willing to amodate his fussiness for food. "Our home is missing a lot of stuff.Can I decorate the ce to my liking?" Zachary picked his head up to nce at his wife sitting opposite him before digging into his breakfast. Themon breakfast tasted alright. "We''re husband and wife with a marriage license.This is your home.You can decorate it as you like on the condition that you don¡¯t touch my room" She was free to turn the other rooms upside down. "Okay." Having obtained his permission, Serenity made up her mind to go as nned. With flowers and a swing on the balcony, she could read a book and admire the flower while sitting in her swing during her spare time. "That reminds me.Nana told me yesterday toe back with you on the weekend for dinner and to meet the family."Zachary faintly responded, "I''ll let you know.I need to check my schedule.If I can''t make the time, I''ll get Nana to bring my parents over.You guys can meet and have a meal." Serenity had no objections. Chapter 9 Chapter 9 Chapter 9 Now that his belly was filled, Zachary took out his wallet and looked through it, but he did not have much cash on him. In the end, he pulled out a debit card and put it in front of Serenity. With a raised brow, Serenity looked at him. "You need money to buy things.This card is for you.The PIN is..." Zachary looked for a pen and paper and wrote the PIN down before handing it to Serenity. "You can use the card for household expenses.I''ll transfer the money into the ount every month when my wages are in, but you need to keen track of whatever you buy.I don¡¯t mind you spending the Thanh c¨¦ng cu to know what it''s spent on." Back when they got the marriage license, Serenity had asked him whether they should go halves on the expenses, to which Zachary shot down. Since they were a married couple, they were family.He did not mind giving her money. Zachary had more money than he could count and could not put a figure to his assets.He barely had time to spend the money as he was often busy at work. At least, his wife could now help him use some of it. Nevertheless, it did not mean that Zachary wanted to be taken advantage of.He had to watch out as Serenity was a scheming girl in his eyes.He had no problems with Serenity squandering the money on the house. Serenity could not stand Zachary¡¯s attitude and conduct.She slid the debit card, alongside the paper with the PIN, back to Zachary.She did not even spare a nce at the PIN. "Mr.York, you''re not the only one in the house.I¡¯m living here too.You bought the house, so I save on rent by living here.I can¡¯t let you pay for the house expenditure too.I''ll pay for whatever''s needed for the house. "I''ll discuss with you if the cost of a household item exceeds two thousand bucks.You can chip in whatever amount you see fit." Her ie was high enough to cover the daily household expenses.There was no need for him to pay unless it was a huge purchase. It was not that she could not ept his money, but his attitude rubbed her the wrong way. He made it seem like she was after his money and even told her to keep track of the purchases. Her bookkeeping was only for the shop''s expenditure and not extended to her life. Zachary was not an idiot. On the contrary, he was very smart. From the refusal, Zachary caught on that his attitude hurt Serenity¡¯s pride. He fell silent for a moment before pushing the debit card and PIN-written paper toward Serenity. Softening his tone, he said, "I know you own a shop, but how much can you make? You said it yourself that this is our home. You''re part of it and so am I. How can I let you shoulder all the household expenses? Take it. Don¡¯t keep a record of your purchase if you don¡¯t want to. "Have you given a thought about getting a car? Do you need my help to pay the initial deposit? You can afford the monthlymitment with your ie." Zachary did not really look into her earnings, but she must be doing well since she started a bookshop at the entrance of Wiltspoon School. Surely, she made quite a bit. At this age, it was the easiest to get women and children to open their wallets. "The house is not too far from my shop.I can take my bike.The traffic in Wiltspoon is horrible during rush hour.My two-wheeled ride is better than a four-wheeled motor." Zachary was lost for words.She was right. He avoided the rush hour to get to work. Sometimes, he was caught in the morning rush hour when he had to leave for an emergency. The gridlock traffic would make him wish he took his private jet out instead. "It would make your life easier with a car.You can drive on the weekends and take your sister and nephew for a short trip." Zachary remembered Nana saying that the woman lived together with her sister. The people who mattered most in Serenity¡¯s life were her sister and nephew. "Maybeter.We just got married, and we don¡¯t know each other well.I don''t feelfortable using your money to buy a car.I have enough savings to get a car, but a house is a better investment.I can have a home with a house.I¡¯m not like you men.Men prefer getting cars." There was a preferential difference between men and women; women would usually pick a house while men were after cars. "Oh, yeah.My sister wants to meet you, but I told her that you''re away on business.I''ll take you to see her at ater date." "Sure," Zachary answered. After the chat, Serenity went to air the clothes while Zachary sat in the living room.He wanted to read the papers, but he did not have a subscription delivered to this ce. Since he could not find the newspaper, he turned to check the news on his phone to kill time. "Have you done yourundry?" Having hung herundry out in the sun, Serenity threw a question to the man on his phone. "I got it covered." His clothes were normally sent to the dry cleaners.Serenity pursed her lips without saying a word more.She went about her business.She swept, mopped, and tidied up the ce. Zachary watched as she shuttled back and forth in the house, doing a maid''s job. Furrowing his brows, he was tempted to say something but held his tongue after much thought. The maids were on top of house chores at his home, but the wife was the one responsible for housework in the everyday family. It was a good thing his butler arranged for the maids to clean before they moved in. The house was spotless.Serenity swept around without finding a speck of dust. Now that she was done with the daily tasks, Serenity returned to her room and cleaned herself up. With a handbag in hand, Serenity walked out of the room and told the man on the sofa, "Mr.York, I''m going to my sister''s ce and then to the shop.Around what time will you be home? You can leave me a message, so I''ll leave the door unlocked." "I''lle back every night unless I''m away on business.I''ll let you know beforehand if I need to go away." "Alright," Serenity replied. "Se-Serenity, take the card." Holding the bank card, Zachary got up and approached Serenity.He handed the debit card to her and apologized. "I should''ve watched my tone just now.I apologize.I¡¯m sorry!" Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity studied his face for a while, finally epting the card as he appeared genuine this time.She stuffed the card, alongside the paper with the PIN, into her pocket. "I should get going" "Sure." Zachary stood there as he watched Serenity leave. Once the door was shut, he let out a sigh of relief.He did not seem to do a good job assuming the role of a husband. Returning to his seat on the sofa, Zachary grabbed his phone from the coffee table and called the butler in the family home. With the butler picking up, he uttered in a low voice, "Sam, when the old Mrs.is up, tell her to gather the family to have dinner at Brynfield.The old Mrs.will know what it''s about." Chapter 10 Chapter 10 Chapter 10 Serenity went to her sister''s ce.She opened the door and went inside the house to find her sister was already up. Liberty was busy in the kitchen. "Liberty." "Seren, you''re here." Liberty came out of the kitchen and was happy to see her little sister. "Have you eaten? I''m making a pot of pasta.Do you want a te?" "I''m good.I had breakfast.Have you started cooking? You don¡¯t have to if you haven''t because I brought you and Sonny breakfast." "Not yet.Sonny had a feverst night.I didn''t sleep much the whole night, so I got upte.Your brother- inw had to get breakfast from the shop.He wasn''t happy about it.He used me of doing nothing all day and I could''ve made him breakfast since all I did was look after a child." Liberty was hurt. Serenity was furious for her sake. "Why did Sonny have a fever? You should take him to see a doctorter even if the fevers gone in case ites back.Seriously.I can¡¯t believe my brother-inw didn''t bother to help and even yelled at you when Sonny was sick. "Is my brother-inw still insisting on going Dutch after I moved out, Liberty?" Liberty took a seat on the sofa and unwrapped the food. She dug in and said, "I''ll take Sonnyter.He''s still insisting on splitting the expenses.He said that all I do is spend money rather than earn my keep.He mentioned that I have no idea the pressure he''s under.As part of the family, I should contribute to the household expenses. "I bet his sister taught him that.My sister-inw can''t stop poking her face into our affairs after we got married.Your brother-inw used to be good to me, and his sister ruined that." Prior to handing in her resignation letter, Liberty worked her way up to the financial chief position.She was paid handsomely. Liberty gave up a lot for love and marriage but received hate from her inws in return. Liberty only spent her money on the home. The clothes she bought were with Serenity¡¯s money. The shopping only came once in a while, and buying things like cosmetics were less frequent than new clothes.However, her inws would kick up a fuss about Liberty''s spending whenever she bought new clothes and cosmetics. Even if Liberty exined that it was with Serenity¡¯s money, her inws would argue the gifted money was a joint asset with her husband, so she had no right to use it for herself. "Liberty, why don''t you send Sonny to a kindergarten? You can pick up your career again and earn as much as, if not more than your husband." Serenity felt sorry for her sister. While Serenity was living under the same roof with her sister and family, Serenity would take on all the housework to help her sister out.Now that she had moved out, Liberty got more on her te. "Your brother-inw said to wait until Sonny is three or four before enrolling him in a kindergarten." Liberty was interested to return to the workce.If nothing else, the burden of a car loan, mortgage, and elderly care was weighing heavily on the family." Serenity frowned as she sensed that her brother-inw was treating Liberty like cr*p, and it was only getting worse. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had to ask, "Do you think my brother-inw is seeing someone else?" Startled, Liberty uttered, "I don¡¯t think so.I know how much he''s making.He doesn¡¯t have extra money to keep a mistress." "But he¡¯s been increasingly rude to you.You must think about your future.Don''t be a misunderstood stay-at-home mom without an ie." Liberty fell silent for a moment before stating, "We''ll see.Don¡¯t worry about me, Seren.I''ll be okay.How are you doing? When is your husbanding back from his trip?" "It''ll be a while.He can be busy since he¡¯s working in a major corporation." Liberty inquired about Serenity''s life at the new home in detail. She was able to rx once she was sure her little sister was doing well. Now that Serenity had spent some time with her nephew, Liberty urged her to get back to the shop. While riding her e-bike to the bookshop, Serenity reflected on her sister''s life of endless bickering. Distracted, Serenity failed to pay attention to her surroundings and nearly rammed into a car. With her fight-or-flight instincts kicking in, Serenity swerved to the side and narrowly missed the car. At the same time, she hit the brakes. The car also came to a screeching halt. Serenity nced at the car. It was a Roll Royce, a luxury sedan! Behind the Rolls Royce was a row of identical vehicles. The people in those cars must be the bodyguards of the person in the luxury sedan. Since Wiltspoon was a metropolis, luxury sedans were not a rare sight. Serenity made a gesture of apology to the driver before starting her e-bike and slipping away. There was no way she was going to wait to be yelled at. The driver turned his head over to the man in ck in the backseat. "Mr.Zachary, it¡¯s the missus." Zachany¡¯s face fell as he clearly witnessed Serenity almost knocking onto his car. She was obviously distracted. To have an absent mind while riding on a busy road, was she trying to get herself killed? Chapter 11 Chapter 11 Chapter 11 "Let''s go." Despite tearing into Serenity in his mind, Zachary had no intention to say or do anything about it. Serenity was his wife on paper, but they were no different than strangers. Too scared to say anything, the driver started the car. Serenity had no idea she nearly ran into her man¡¯s car. She sped off on her e-bike and made it to the shop in no time. Jasmine always arrived earlier than Serenity since the former lived nearby. "Seren." Jasmine ordered breakfast after she was done setting up the shop. She was enjoying breakfast when her best friend entered the scene. Jasmine asked with a smile, "Have you eaten?" "Yeah." "Oh." Jasmine went on to finish the most important meal of the day. "l brought you some desserts.They''re delicious.Try them." Jasmine told her best friend while putting down her bag by the cash register. Serenity ced her bike keys by the cash register and sat down before pulling over the bag containing the dessert. "You can¡¯t go wrong with desserts.I saw a Roll Royce on my way to work, Jasmine." Jasmine replied, "I see.It''s not strange to spot a Ralls Royce in Wiltspoon, but it''s not amon sight.Did you see who''s in the car? Is it just like in the books - a hot and single CEO?"Serenity stared at Jasmine without a word. Jasmine chuckled. "That''s what it''s like in the books.Why are the young, hot, and rich CEOs eluding us?" "The storylines are made up to cater to the market.Would anyone read a book if it''s about your average wage earner? The leading man has to be society''s elite even if he isn''t a CEO." Jasmine burst into another bout ofughter. "That reminds me.Are you free tonight, Seren?" "You know I''m either at home or at the shop, right? What''s the matter?" Life was simple to Serenity as it only revolved around managing the shop and caring for her sister''s son. "There''s a dinner party tonight.It''s a gathering of high society.I got an invite.Do you want toe along and have a peek into their world?" Serenity turned down the offer. "I don¡¯t run in the same circle as them.I''m not interested." Although she earned quite a bit, the upper crust was beyond her reach.She had no intention to elbow her way into themunity, nor did she have the means to. To be frank, Serenity might be mistaken as the server if someone of her social status were to attend such a refined dinner party. "I don¡¯t want to go either, but my mom begged my aunt for an invite.I can bring a plus one, so I thought of taking you.Seren, oh Seren.Pleasee with me to see what it''s like.Wait, no.I need you there to be my rock.I don''t want my mom to nag at me." The Soxes were wealthy and locals of Wiltspoon. They owned several properties and half a block of stores, making their tens of millions through rent. However, wealth could not buy social standing. Mrs.Sox took pride in her daughter''s pretty face as marrying her off could be the ticket to a higher social ss. Jasmine''s aunt happened to marry into a rich and powerful family. It had been a few tough decades, but it finally worked out for the aunt as she was now rubbing shoulders with the upper ss. The aunt doted on Jasmine and believed her niece had just only what it took to bag a wealthy and influential bachelor. Since Jasmine¡¯s mom asked, the aunt was happy to make it happen for her niece. "Is Mrs.Sox pressuring you to get married again?" "All mothers are the same.They can''t wait to kick their daughters out and make them another man''s problem once their daughters turn eighteen.I can make my own money and be financially independent.I don''t need a man to enjoy a good life. "I think you shouldn''t marry out of your social ss.I don''t want to marry up.Although my aunt is mingling well with the circle, it took her decades to get there.She faced a lot of difficulties when she first married her husband.She used to cry to my mom when she visited back then.She knows what it¡¯s like." Jasmine was all for freedom and not being bound by the upper crust¡¯s unwritten rules. "Come on, Seren.Just tonight.We''ll be in this together.We get to see how the top 1% live.My aunt said there will be a lot of young eligible bachelors attending tonight.They''re all Wiltspoon¡¯s finest and richest.We can check the scene out even if we''re not there to snag a man.It''s a dinner party, so there''s going to be lots of good food." Serenity was not one to say no to food.So was Jasmine. It was thatmon interest that brought the pair together.It took an hour of convincing before Serenity gave in to her best friend¡¯s request. They closed the store early to attend the event. Serenity called her sister and asked about her nephew.Her nephew had seen a doctor, and the fever was only a case of the sniffles.It put Serenity¡¯s mind at ease.She then told Liberty about attending a dinner party with Jasmine. "It''s nice even if it''s just for the experience.Of course, you could make some friends from that circle." Liberty was in favor of Serenity attending the party.It was not for any other reason than to witness the other side of the world. The shop was closed right after lunch just to attend tonight''s party. Jasmine dragged her best friend home to put on some fancy dress and p some makeup on. Since the Soxes adored Serenity, they had no problem with Jasmine bringing Serenity along to the dinner party. Serenity was married anyway, so there was no concern that Serenity would steal the limelight from Jasmine. Just after six in the evening, a sedan arranged by Jasmine''s aunt rolled into the Soxes¡¯ driveway. "Have fun." Seeing the girls off at the door, Mrs.Sox said to Serenity, "Help me keep an eye on Jasmine, Seren.Don¡¯t let her stuff her face.Get her to socialize with the young bachelors." She told her daughter, "Jasmine, your aunt has done a lot for you.Don''t let her down." Serenity replied with a smile, "Don¡¯t worry, Mrs.Sox.I''ll help you keep an eye on Jasmine so she doesn''t wander off to the buffet." They would hang out at the buffet together. "I feel relieved with you around." Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Mrs.Sox was fond of Serenity because the girl was sensible and independent.Had it not been because her son was a lot younger than Serenity, Mrs.Sox would have yed matchmaker for them.It was regrettable that Serenity was taken. There were a lot of youngsters in the Sox family. Serenity could have picked any one of them if she wanted to walk down the aisle. It was what it was. There was no point talking about it since it was not like Mrs.Sox''s regret could change anything. With Mrs.Sox urging them to hurry up, Jasmine, dolled up in morous makeup, white gown, and jewelry, dragged her best friend into the sedan arranged by the aunt. Seeing that Serenity was married and acting as a plus-one, she did not bother to dress up.She wore her usual clothes and put on natural makeup. Nevertheless, her natural beauty still shone through despite her in attire. Chapter 12 Chapter 12 Chapter 12 The dinner party was held at Wiltspoon Hotel, a ce Serenity never had a chance to step into. The Wiltspoon Hotel was one of the finest hotels in the city. Some said it was a seven-star hotel, but Serenity had no idea if that was true because it was not news she would follow. Jasmine¡¯s aunt arrived at the hotel before the girls and exchanged greetings with her friends. The aunt then told her children to enter the hotel while she stayed at the door to wait for Jasmine and Serenity to arrive. As the car she arranged cruised over behind other cars, the aunt curled her lips to smile. A few minutester, Jasmine, with Serenity in tow, approached the aunt. "Aunt Rachel." "Mrs.Lowe." Serenity and her best friend said hello to Rachel. Rachel was not entirely okay with Jasmine bringing Serenity along as she had met the girl before. Rachel had to admit that the girl, who lost her Parents at a young age, was better looking than her niece. Despiteing from a middle-ss family, Serenity carried herself with natural grace and ss. The aunt was initially worried Serenity might overshadow her niece, but since Jasmine¡¯s mom mentioned Serenity was married, Rachel was relieved. Seeing that Serenity ditched the evening dress formon clothes, opted for light makeup, and forewent the jewelry, Rachel was d that her morous niece outshone Serenity¡¯s natural beauty. At least, Serenity was sensible and knew her ce. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. "Come with me.I''ll take you in.Jasmine, take out your invite.The security will check it for registration." Jasmine immediately pulled out her invitation. "Mind yourselves when you get in.Try to talk less but observe more.If the time is right, I''ll introduce you around.Seren, I can trust you more than I do Jasmine.Watch Jasmine so she stays out of trouble.The Wiltspoon Hotel is one of the hotels the richest family owns.The family¡¯s heirs might be here tonight." Rachel then whispered in her niece''s ear, "Jasmine, it would be a great blessing to our family if you win the heart of one of the heirs.The family tends to keep a low profile and adopts healthy family values.You don¡¯t hear much of a power struggle.Most importantly, the men in that family are decent enough not to have mistresses. "My daughter isn¡¯t at the age to marry yet.Otherwise, I would''ve saved the chance for my daughter." Ultimately, Rachel had a closer bond with her daughter than with her niece. However, her daughter was only seventeen and not at the legal age to marry. Jasmine replied, "..Aunt Rachel, I wouldn''t dare dream of climbing up the socialdder by marrying the richest family in Wiltspoon" She came here for the food.Serenity stood next to them, listening without butting in.She was here to y second fiddle anyway. Her eyes were set on the food as it was said that Wiltspoon Hotel had great chefs. "What''s thest name of the richest family?" Although Jasmine was not a daydreamer, it did not stop her from prying. "York." "York? Now, isn''t that peculiar?" Jasmine nudged her best friend as Serenity''s new husband shared the samest name. Serenity knew what her best friend was getting at, but she simply grinned without a word. Although her husband''sst name was York, Zachary had no rtion to the richest family except for the surname. It wasmon to share the same full name, let alone ast name. "The Yorks might be made of money, but they''re not snobs.The family will ept whoever their boys pick so long as the woman is of good character.The Yorks are pretty open-minded." Rachel had no qualms about pushing her niece to go after the Yorks. Her niece was good-looking and nice. Jasmine''s family was also well-off, and although nowhere near the wealthiest family, the Soxes prevailed over many. Jasmine¡¯s nonchnce tempted Rachel to pull her ear. In the end, Rachel helplessly uttered, "You two should head in.I just saw a friend.I''m going there to say hello." "Aunt Rachel, we''ll go in then." Jasmine hastily dragged Serenity to get away from Aunt Rachel''s nagging. Aunt Rachel was exactly like her mom.It was no wonder Aunt Rachel got along with Mom. They were two of a kind. It was Serenity¡¯s first time at the Wiltspoon Hotel while Jasmine had been here a few times. Leading her best friend, Jasmine nimbly grabbed two tes of food and hid in a corner. "We don''t know thesedies.They won''t give us the time of day if we go up and introduce ourselves.Let''s dig in, Seren.We''re here to check out the scene and see what a party among the higher society is like." Serenity said with a smile, "Mrs.Sox is going to kill you if she finds out you''re only here for the food." Nheless, Serenity came for the same thing. Jasmine uttered without a care, "Look at me. Who am I to snag one of the eligible bachelors here tonight? My aunt is dreaming to think the heirs would fancy me. "Seren, do I look like Miss Universe or Miss World to you? Would the heirs think I''m a catch? Heh.Only my aunt would think that.Let''s not bother.Come on.Dig in.The Wiltspoon Hotel''s known for its gourmet food.I had been to the hotel restaurant in the past, but I couldn''t bring myself to order some of the dishes.They were too expensive.I can finally try them tonight." "Thanks to you, I get to try the food tao." Like Jasmine, Serenity was indifferent about the whole thing. Serenity was married anyway. The pair hid in a corner as they enjoyed a great feast. Suddenly, the crowd turned their eyes to the hotel entrance. With silence filling the room, the pair, who were munching in delight, realized something was up. Serenity elbowed her best friend and asked, "Jasmine, why did they stop talking? They are all facing the door.Who''s there?" "No idea" Jasmine stood up while Serenity followed behind. Getting on their tiptoes, the pair tried to get a view of the hotel entrance, but there were too many people in between to witness the grand entrance.It was quite a bustle that drew everybody''s attention. Dressed to the nines, Zachary walked into his family-owned hotel surrounded by his bodyguards. The organizer of the event tonight was a prominent figure in the business world who was buddies with the Yorks. Since Zachary was head of the York family and the party was held in his family¡¯s hotel, the least Zachary could do was to show up. After sorting out the critical affairs, Zachary made an appearance at the event. His lofty build and attractive appearance, despite his tense facial muscles and standoffish presence, were like a ma, drawing everybody''s attention wherever he went. "Mr.York." "Mr.York." Zachary was showered with reverent greetings as he made his way through the crowd. The high-standing CEOs greeted Zachary face-to-face. Zachary courteously nodded his head as a response to the hellos. Chapter 13 Chapter 13 Chapter 13 Zachary was the center of attention as he walked into the room,pletely oblivious to his new bride in a corner. Serenity''s gaze could not get past the crowd and onto her man¡¯s face. After failing to catch a glimpse of the leading man despite standing on her toes to look for a long time, Serenity soon lost interest and sat back down. ¡®I She tugged on her best friend and said, "I won''t bother.There are too many people around to get a good look.Let''s eat." I To Serenity, the mission tonight was to pig out! "Wait for me here, Seren.I''ll ask my aunt who came.All thatmotion is as if the king has graced us with his presence"The curiosity was eating Jasmine up inside. "Sure" Serenity casually replied. Jasmine went off on her own. Since Serenity had cleared her tes, she picked up her empty tes and got up. While everybody was fussing over the VIP. Serenity could grab the { food at ease without enduring the stares and dirty looks. Zachary walked into the room and first went to have a small talk with the 4 organizer of the event.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. His bodyguards, with their game faces on, kept their eyes and ears peeled for anything and everything. Mr.Zachary had a thing against femalesing too close. Their primary task when attending events with Mr.Zachary was to be on {the lookout for those with ulterior motives. Perhaps blessed with height, one of the bodyguards was able to look far £¤ and caught sight of Mr.Zachary''s wife while assessing the venue. Zachary withheld his identity when he married Serenity. However, as Zachary¡¯s bodyguards, they recognized the missus of the house. Hence, Zachary¡¯s bodyguards, aside from the old Mrs., were familiar with Serenity. Thinking his eyes were fooling him, the said bodyguard was fixated on the girl and realized that it was indeed Mr.Zachans wife. The missus was unfazed by Mr.Zachary¡¯s presence as she held two tes and selected her favorite food. It did not take long before her tes were filled to the brim. Carrying two tes of food, Serenity walked away and sat down at the table in a corner. She proceeded to indulge in the food like nothing ever happened. The bodyguard was rendered speechless. Once Zachary was done exchanging words with a few well-acquainted CEOs, the bodyguard seized the opportunity to walk up to him and whispered, "Mr.Zachary, I saw your missus." Zachary furrowed his brows but quickly wiped off the scowl and coldly blurted, "Why is she here?" "No clue" "Keep an eye on her.Don''t let her see me.Also, snap some pictures of who she''s with and interacts with." In Zachary¡¯s eyes, Serenity had not cleared herself from having an ulterior motive. He suspected Serenity was here to climb higher on the socialdder. That was the reason he kept his identity from her. Serenity might be turned off that he was a measly wage earner. The bodyguard respectfully took the order. Zachary casually went back to sharing a pleasant conversation with the CEOs. It was usually through these conversations that deals were closed. Serenity was unaware that she was seen and watched by her husband''s bodyguard. With Jasmine returning from asking around, Serenity inquired, "How was it? Did you get anything?" "Yeah.The heir of the Yorks is here.He''s the head of York Corporation, but I couldn''t see the man himself.There are too many people.He''s also surrounded by a security detail.My auntmentably told me that the heir doesn''t like females getting too close to him.Every time he attends an event, he keeps his bodyguards near to shut out all the singledies from trying to chat him up." "Oh." Serenity could not care less. "Seren, your man is also a York.Do you think there''s no corrtion? There aren''t a lot of people with thatst name, and that''s the surname of the richest family." Chapter 14 Chapter 14 Chapter 14 Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine brought a ss of red wine to her lips and took a sip. "You read too many chick lits. There are so many people with the same first andst names under the sun, much less a surname. Bill Gates is one of the richest men, but do you think everybody with that last name is his family?" Jasmine smiled. "You have a point." "My husband is a white-cor worker. He drives a national car that''s worth about a hundred and thirty thousand dors. Do you think the heir of the Yorks would drive that sort of car? You have a wild imagination, don''t you?" Serenity never dreamed about bing Cindere. It was fine to daydream but not to the extent of being out of touch with reality. "Come to think of it, can the head of the York family swing the other way since he doesn¡¯t want young females approaching him? Is he married?" Serenity was the least bit interested in the young heirs appearance. Nevertheless, it was questionable that he shunned away from young women. Either he was chaste, or he had a problem in that department. He might y for the other team for all she knew. "I never heard the news of him getting hitched. Although we''re not in that circle, news of his marriage would rock Wiltspoon since he''s the head of the York household. The papers and media would''ve been all over his wedding. We heard nothing, so I guess he''s single." Jasmine put down her ss. "Now that you''ve said it, I think something''s up with him. It''s unusual for a fine man like him not to even have a girlfriend." "We''ll never know what''s going on in the minds of the wealthy. Eat up. We should leave after eating our fill." "Sure," Jasmine responded. The girls began to feast like nobody''s business. Many had observed them. Some looked away after a fleeting nce while others watched on with disdain and taunt. It appeared an heiress and her maid attended the ball and hid in a corner to eat the whole night as if they had been starved. These girls sure could eat! "Jas." Rachel''s son, Shawn Lowe came by. Younger than Jasmine by three years, he had a good rtionship with his cousin. He tagged along with his parents to mingle around the crowd when his mother suddenly thought of Jasmine. Shawn was under the instructions to look around for Jasmine. "Come, Shawn. Sit" Jasmine pulled a chair over for her cousin to sit down. With Serenity smiling at Shawn, thetter blushed and raised his ss at her. He asked with a grin, "Do you drink, Serenity?" "I rarely do." Serenity only indulged in alcohol on a rare asion because she could barely hold her drink. How could she when a bottle of beer could knock her out for twelve hours? Serenity would be embarrassing herself, her best friend, and Mrs. Lowe''s family if she were to pass out here. "Do you want milk or juice? I''ll bring you a ss." Shawn got up to leave. Pulling him back, Serenity replied, "It¡¯s fine, Shawn. I''m full. I don¡¯t think I can handle another drink." Shawn sat back down. "Jas, did you and Serenity sit here the whole night?" Shawn appeared troubled as he remarked, "Mom wanted to introduce you to a few nice men, but you weren''t there every time she turned around. She couldn''t just walk away from the otherdies, so she told me to look for you." Chapter 15 Chapter 15 Chapter 15 Having eaten to her heart''s content, Jasmine gleefully said, "Shawn, I¡¯m not interested in the eligible bachelors. Serenity and I are only here to check out the scene and taste the food. The ce lives up to its name as a seven-star hotel. The food is amazing. It was a hearty meal." Shawn was speechless. "We''re stuffed now. It''s gettingte, Shawn. Serenity and I got to go. Please let my aunt know on my behalf." Anxious, Shawn did a double take on Serenity and answered, "Leaving so soon? Jas, the party is only halfway through. It¡¯s still early. The earliest would be eleven o''clock tonight before the party''s over." Serenity chimed in. "We have a business to run tomorrow, so we can''t stay out thatte." With the pair getting up, Shawn followed behind them. "You know you can dy the opening time by a few hours." Shawn hovered around Serenity, hoping to keep the girls around for a little longer. "That won''t do. Our busiest times are in the morning, afternoon, and evening. Missing out on the morning session could cost us a lot" Patting her cousin''s shoulder, Jasmine poked fun in delight. "You should stick around and see if there''s anyone you fancy. Although you''re still young, nothing''s stopping you from seeing a girl." Shawn stole another nce at Serenity. Blushing in the face, he bashfully said, "I''m fresh out of college, Jas. I''ll think about marriage once I''m steady in my job for a few years." Serenity put forth her opinion. "There''s no rush for boys. Shawn''s only twenty-two this year. He can wait another two years." Shawn bobbed his head along, only for Serenity to add responsively. "You were still a little kid when I first met you. I can¡¯t believe you''re all grown up now." Shawn was speechless. Unable to persuade the girls to stay, Shawn walked with them out of the hotel. "Jas, did you drive here?" "Your mom arranged for a car to pick us up." Jas was not bothered when she said, "Seren and I can take the cab. You should go back in, Shawn. Tell my aunt that we got to leave. I hope you have fun." There were a lot of people hanging around the lobby. Everybody nced at Jasmine and Serenity, but none came to chat with him as the girls were unfamiliar faces. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Since the pair did not want to catch a cab in front of the hotel, they walked to the street before hailing a cab. They told Shawn, who had been walking with them, "Shawn, hurry back to the hotel. Bye now." Shawn waved his arm reluctantly as he watched the girls get into the cab and ride off. He stood by the road for a long time before making his way back. At the hotel entrance, he bumped into Zachary who was on his way out. The center of attention as always, Zachary demonstrated the makings of a leader through his security detail around him. Shawn stopped at the sight of him and took a step to the side to make way for Zachary. "Mr. Lowe." Zachary paused in his footsteps as he was passing by Shawn and politely acknowledged Shawn. ttered, Shawn immediately responded with a smile, "Mr. York." Everybody else was taken aback by the exchange of greeting between Zachary and Shawn. The Lowes were of the upper crust, but they barely crossed paths with the Yorks. Shawn was only a kid in everybody''s eyes. Although he had entered the family business, Shawn was starting from the bottom up. Shawn was holding an insignificant position in the Lowes¡¯pany. For the lofty Zachary to say hello to Shawn, was he trying to build a bridge because he saw something in Shawn as the future heir of the Lowes¡¯ business, or did he see a promising future in the Lowes? Mr. and Mrs. Lowe were seeing Zachary out along with the crowd. Seeing that Zachary acknowledged their son''s presence, the couple was astonished and pleasantly surprised. Chapter 16 Chapter 16 Chapter 16 Within the businessmunity in Wiltspoon, anyone who had won Zachary''s favor would go ces like the world was theirs to take. Mr. and Mrs. Lowe brought their son along to the dinner party so he could meet people and make friends. It was toy the groundwork for their son''s future. "Mr. Lowe, you were..." "I was just returning from walking my family to get a ride." Before Zachary could finish his sentence, Shawn jumped in to exin what he was doing in case Zachary might take it the wrong way that Shawn did Not care for these social settings or was unhappy with the hotel service. The Wiltspoon Hotel was one of the many hotels under the Yorks¡¯ gship. "Oh" Zachary then walked past Shawn, looking like he only greeted Shawn out of politeness. Shawn had no time to get over the situation as a crowd around Zachary walked right past him. Shawn became a nobody in an instant. Everybody was used to Zachary making a brief appearance at an event before taking off. The CEOs were secretly d that they managed to talk business with Zachary. It was a good thing that they moved quickly and jumped at the chance. Soon, the Rolls Royce with the car te number, XX8888, escorted by cars of his security detail, left the Wiltspoon Hotel. "Where to, Mr. Zachary?" Behind the wheel, the driver asked. Zachary took a look at the time, and it was only half past nine. Since it was still early for him, he gave it a thought and replied, "To Brynfield." "Got it"" the driver responded. To Zachary''s surprise, he came home earlier than Serenity. Back at his empty home devoid of warmth, Zachary sat on the sofa and disinterestedly watched TV while waiting for his wife, who had note home despite leaving the hotel earlier. The bodyguard had captured Serenity¡¯s every move at the party and sent the pictures to Zachary¡¯s phone. Zachary scrolled through each photo. All the woman did was eat as if she had been starving for a lifetime. Nevertheless, her hiding in a corner to eat was better than her hitting on other men. Zachary frowned at her attire. The woman was underdressed and did not even put on an evening gown. Of course, he would lock her out of the house if she appeared at the ball, dressed to the nines. Apart from Shawn, Serenity did not engage with other males. Shawn was the cousin of her best friend, so they must already know each other. In the end, Zachary was fixated on a photograph with his lips pursed. His eyes reflected growing profundity and callousness. It was a hard angle to pull even for a candid photo. The bodyguard somehow managed to capture Shawn sneaking a nce at Serenity. As the head of York Corporation, Zachary had trained eagle eyes. He picked up on the subtlety of the photograph. Shawn had a thing for Serenity! It was hard for Zachary to believe he had a rival in love! ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. There was a click on the door lock. Zachary stopped looking at the photos and quickly stuffed his phone into his pocket. Serenity opened the door and was surprised to find Zachary sitting on the sofa watching TV. While closing and locking the door, she asked, "Are you not workingte tonight, Mr. York?" Chapter 17 Chapter 17 Chapter 17 "Yeah." Zachary answered in a deep voice. Serenity drew close, holding a carrier bag in hand. "I bought cranberries. Do you want some?" ck in the face, Zachary gave her a dirty look. All she did was eat at the dinner party. Yet, she still had room for more. She was such a glutton! "Cranberries can taste bitter when eaten raw, but there''s a sweet aftertaste thates through. It was once the favorite of my most cherished man." Taking the seat next to Zachary, Serenity opened the container of cranberries. Zachary discreetly scooted to the side to pull away from her. He did not want his clothes stained. "Your most cherished man?" "The man on the hundred-dor bill." Zachary was speechless. Money to him was a series of numbers in his ount. "Do you want to try a bite? It''s tasty. For real. It''s delicious. I can''t get enough of it." "No. Knock yourself out. One more thing. Can you take it to the dining hall? I can¡¯t stand to see the furniture stained."Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Seeing that Zachary was a clean freak, Serenity carried her container away while mumbling to herself, "The high wage earners must be very particr over the finer materials in life." Serenity was having a st snacking in the dining room. With a grimace, Zachary stared at her back, but who was he to judge? To each their own. "Mr. York, since you did not workte tonight, can youe home early tomorrow too?" From the dining hall, Serenity threw a question at the man. Zachary fell silent for a moment before coldly inquiring, "What for?" The man must be born indifferent as his tone had always been unemotional and t since their first encounter. Serenity grumbled in her mind. Nevertheless, they only married for convenience. They could just divorce if they found it hard to live together. "I need you to drive me to the market florist tomorrow. I want to buy a few potted nts to put on the balcony. It''s more convenient since you have a car" Zachary was without a word. "If you can¡¯t get up that early, you can lend me your car. I''ll get myself there." "What time?" After an internal struggle, Zachary asked for the time in the end. He decided to get up early in the morning and go with her to the market florist for nts to furnish their balcony. "Six o''clock. We can have breakfast before getting the nts. We might as well get a few essentials for the house too." Serenity noticed the house was missing a lot of items when she moved in on the first day. She suspected that Zachary did not live here prior to her upying the space as there was no hint of life in the ce. "Sure." Zachary answered. Once Serenity finished her cranberries and came to the living room, Zachary asked, "Why did you close shop early tonight?" Chapter 18 Chapter 18 Chapter 18 "I wasn''t at the shop tonight. My friend wanted to attend a dinner party and asked me to tag along. Oh, right. Mr. York, I want to ask you about something, but I''m not sure if it''s something you''refortable answering." Taking the seat opposite Zachary, Serenity stared at the man with her big bright eyes. The man was aloof, distant, and nasty toward her. She knew he built a wall around him to keep nobody out but her. However, he was blessed with good looks. His face was aesthetically pleasing as if she was looking at a beautiful scenery. "The party was held at the Wiltspoon Hotel. I heard the hotel belongs to the wealthiest family in the city. Guess what? The heir of the family attended tonight too. Hisst name is York, but I think you''re unrted to that family, right?" Without batting an eye, Zachary s¨¦ly replied, "We just so happen to share the samest name" Serenity heaved a sigh of relief and responded with a smile, "I knew you have no rtions to the wealthiest family in town." Seeing that she was d and relieved, Zachary somehow had to ask, "Don''t you want me to be rted to them?" "It''s nighttime now." Serenity added with a smirk, "Quit daydreaming." "If you''re linked to the wealthy Yorks, would you marry a stranger like me? Without a doubt, the Yorks are the cr¨¦me de cr¨¦me in the social hierarchy, and I''m way at the bottom of the barrel. Even if you''re only a cousin of the uncle to the grandfather of the family¡¯s heir, I''d think you''re out of my league. I wouldn¡¯t feelfortable living together. "Since you have no rtions to the wealthy York, I don''t feel the strain as we run in the same circle." Zachary pursed his lips without a word. "Your Nana said you work at a major corporation. Have you heard about the heir to York Corporation? He was there tonight. People were all over him as if he was the king. Jasmine and I had to get on our tiptoes, but we couldn''t get a look at his face." Zachary kept his lips tightly pressed with his brooding and icy eyes. "They said that the heir always has bodyguards following him around so no women could get close to him. Jasmine asked around and found out that the heir was single and not involved in any scandal. I guess he doesn''t even have a girlfriend. "Mr. York, do you think it''s a matter of sexuality or something else since the heir is still single despite his age?" Her words nearly startled Zachary to bite his tongue. Zachary could bum holes through Serenity with the stare he was giving her right now. How could she question his manhood right in his face?! Taking his re as surprise, Serenity broke it down for Zachary. "For a man of his stature to refuse approaching youngdies, he must not be interested in them. No wonder he''s not married even though he''s not getting any younger. Ordinary people like us will never understand the world of the rich." Resisting the urge to strangle her, Zachary asked coldly, "How do you know he¡¯s not young at all? It doesn¡¯t mean he swings the other way just because he steers clear of women." "He''s the head of the York family. We''re not living in romance fiction. It takes time for a sessor to mature and prove his worth in taking over the family business. They''d be at least thirty-five before that can happen. That''s reaching middle age. To a young girl like me, that''s old." Zachary opened his mouth but could not find the words to refute her. It was not as if he could correct her that the heir of the Yorks was only thirty years of age, and only five years older than she was. He was not old at all. A whileter, he callously inquired, "You seem fascinated by the heir." "Not at all. This was the first time I got firsthand gossip about a major CEO. Where there are people, there''s gossip. I was just giving my two cents. Mrs. Lowe was hoping Jasmine could charm the heir, but Jasmine has no intention to marry up. The world of the rich and powerful is beyond us all." Serenity had heard about the hardship Mrs. Lowe faced when marrying into a higher social ss. The Soxes were multimillionaires, and although they made their money through opportune property investments, the family had amassed a fortune. Despite being rich, Mrs. Lowe had to jostle through adversity to integrate into the cultured ss. Ordinary girls such as them should not believe in fairytales. "It''ste. I¡¯m going to shower." Serenity and her husband chatted for a bit until there was nothing to talk about. At the end of the day, they were still strangers. Getting up, Serenity went to the balcony to take in herundry. "When you were renovating, you should''ve gotten the builder to install two rails as drying racks." Zachary remained silent. He bought a move-in-ready property. These trivial matters were usually not his concern, so how would he know the rails had to be installed on the balcony for drying clothes?Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 19 Chapter 19 Chapter 19 "I''m taking a trip back to my hometown after meeting your parents this weekend. I want to chop down a few bamboos to make the rails." Zachary replied faintly, "No need, I''ll get someone to install the rails tomorrow." Thedy of the York house wanted to go all the way to her hometown to chop down some bamboo and haul them back forundry-airing purposes. The only person who coulde up with this is Serenity. "Sure. Thanks." "This is also my home." "Yeah," Serenity answered before carrying herundry to her bedroom. She pushed open her bedroom door before turning around to look at Zachary, "If you want, you can leave your dirty clothes out after shower. I¡¯ll wash your clothes when I¡¯m doing my laundry." "It''s fine. Thank you. I''ll get someone to deliver two washing machines tomorrow. It''d be easy to have a washing machine in each of our bathrooms." "Alright. Tell me how much you pay for the washing machines. I''ll split with you." Serenity could not let him foot the bill for the washing machines too since he had already given her a debit card for household expenses. Zachary faintly uttered, "Two washing machines won''t cost a lot. I can afford a little over ten thousand bucks. Besides, they''re white goods for our house." In case she thought he was horrible with household nning, Zachary added. "I''m usually busy with work, so I send my clothes to the dry cleaners. That''s why I didn''t get a washing machine." It was not a question of the incapability of managing a house, but simply because Zachary did not take a lot of things into ount, nor is he knowledgeable about quotidian needs. For the past thirty years, he had lived in true fashion thefortable life of an heir. Even so, Zachary would do as much as he could by himself. Theundry though, was something he had never attempted before. "Got it" Serenity understood that highly skilled white cors often made do with life due to their busy schedule. They did not have time to think about their daily necessities. "Get some early rest, Mr. York." Serenity entered her room before shutting and locking the door behind her. Zachary glowered at the click of the door locking. He believed she was keeping her guard up against him. Nevertheless, he soon realized that they were even, since he too locked his bedroom door and closed the window when he slept at night. In a way, they had a good system going on. Serenity set her boundaries while he set his. They respected one another and gave each other space to breathe. Most notably, Serenity never expected him to fulfill his part of the marital duty. A momentter, Zachary whipped out his phone to call Sam, the butler. With the call connecting, Zachary solemnly instructed, "Sam, get two washing machines delivered to Brynfield. You can decide on the brand. Don''t make it too expensive or too cheap." Sam respectfully heeded the request. Zachary hung up and stared at the shut door. He then got up and returned to his room. The night passed amid the silence. The following morning at six o''clock, Zachary was woken up by a call. He grabbed his phone for a look. It was Serenity calling him. Although annoyed, Zachary sucked it up and took Serenity¡¯s call. "Are you awake, Mr. York? We agreed to get flowers at the florist at six." "I''m up." N?velDrama.Org owns this text. "I''ll wait for you. If you could hurry up." "Sure." Since he said he would take her there yesterday, Zachary swiftly got up, got dressed, washed up, and went out the door despite his sleepiness. Serenity was holding a purse, containing her phone, keys, and the debit card given by Zachary. She was going to check the ount bnce at the ATMter. She had to buy things within her means after all. Chapter 20 Chapter 20 Chapter 20 "Let''s go." Zachary drew close and faintly uttered. "Kay." Serenity went with him. As the couple walked together without a word, Serenity wanted to make conversation. However, that ever solemn and tensed face with an invisible "keep out" sign on that forehead of his was off-putting. His talent would go to waste if he did not be a school teacher. With a face like that, he could easily keep the children in check. A short whileter, they arrived at the market. Serenity directed Zachary to park the car in an empty lot. After getting down from the car. she told him, "Come on. Let''s have breakfast." Without a peep, Zachary followed behind her. The great Zachary York was out of ce for his first trip to the market, but he rolled with it and hid his difort from Serenity. The pair ordered a bagel sandwich each, and Serenity requested extra toppings for herself. Still, the bagel sandwich did not quell Serenity¡¯s hunger. Zachary took his time with his food, observing exemry table manners to the tee. It was a mouthwatering and appetizing experience to watch him eat. If it were not because she was afraid Zachary would criticize her binge eating, she could have ordered some greasy bacon and fried potatoes. "You can order whatever you want if you''re not full." Zachary could tell she wanted more. With that appetite of hers, a bagel sandwich with extra toppings was barely scratching the surface. Last night at the party, she did not stop shoving food down her throat for over an hour. Not only that, but she also brought cranberries home for dessert. Despite her slender figure that could pass as a model, the girl could really eat. God knows where all that food went. "I''m full, but watching you eat makes me hungry." Zachary frowned. "Hehe. Don''t be mad. I¡¯mplimenting the way you eat. Just by looking at you, I feel like you''re feasting on a gourmet meal. I got the craving to join in." Zachary stared at Serenity speechlessly before turning his attention back to his bagel sandwich. He was only going at a snail''s pace because he could not get used to the food. After the couple was done eating, Serenity led him around. Instead of heading straight to the florist, Serenity went to a nearby 24-hour ATM for cash withdrawals. Zachary watched as Serenity took out the debit card from her purse. Serenity had a good memory and had already memorized the PIN he wrote down. Inserting the card into the teller, Serenity punched the PIN and checked on the ount bnce. It was ten thousand dors. Ten thousand dors were enough for her to get essential houseware. "Let me know if the money isn¡¯t enough. I''ll wire it to the ount." "It''s more than enough. We don¡¯t need a lot for a two-person household. I was just wondering about the bnce so I can stay within budget." Serenity had to spare some for living expenses apart from furnishings. She had checked on her kitchenware order. It was arriving tomorrow. Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Anyway, Serenity would be cooking up a storm for the inws on the day of their visit. "Let''s go to the florist." Serenity put the debit card back in the purse before taking Zachary to a florist close by. There were a few florists near the market and business was booming. They would open their shops early considering their location adjacent to the market and the high footfall in the mornings and evenings. Serenity first asked Zachary about his flower preference. Learning he had none, Serenity bought many potted nts to her liking. She also purchased two nt stands to assembleter at home. Chapter 21 Chapter 21 Chapter 21 Zachary watched as Serenity picked the flowers and haggled with the florist.She lowered the price by half from fifty bucks for a potted nt. Not to mention, she made it seer like the florist would not get a better deal than what she was offering.It was intriguing, to say the least.He was not one to look at the price tag or bargain when shopping. Too bad for the florist though because his wife could drive a hard bargain. The look on the florist''s face was priceless. After paying up, Serenity carried the flowerpots one by one into Zachary''s car. At first, Zachary stood by the car and watched butter realized he was Standing out for the wrong reasons as the girl was doing the heavy lifting herself. He then helped Serenity transport the flowers until his vehicle was filled to the brim. It was a good thing the florist gave them some ttened cardboard toy on the seats. That was better than getting his seats soiled. "Do you need anything else?" Zachary asked his wife as he got into the car. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. "The car is too full to put anything else.That''s it for today.It won''t take a day or two to furnish a ce.I''ll take my time to get the stuff and decorate our house." With Serenity buckling up, she whipped out her phone to look at the time.She then said to Zachary, "Let''s head back.I need to make a trip to my sister''ster." Zachary quietly started the car. "Mr.York." "Yes?" "Nana and your parents areing to visit on the weekend.Can I ask my sister toe along with her husband for dinner? My sisters family is all I got.Even though we didn¡¯t marry for love, we should meet each others family." Otherwise, their families would be oblivious if they ever bumped into each other on the streets. Serenity had grandparents, aunts, and uncles living in the rural area, but they did not take too kindly to Serenity and Liberty as they were girls. After Serenity''s parents passed away in a car crash, none of the family members stepped up to take the sisters in. However, these family members did not hesitate to walk away with a share of the parents¡¯ life insurance. The house left behind by Serenity¡¯s parents was upied by her grandparents. Serenity did not bother returning to her parent''s home, nor did she see the grandparents as family. Despite refusing to take in the girls when their parents passed away, the grandparents had the nerve to demand support funds when Liberty got married. The sisters called their grandparents out on hypocrisy while Liberty stood firmly on her ground, stopping her husband from paying the grandparents to make the problem disappear. In the end, the grandparents stormed off in a fuss without receiving a penny. They did not attend Liberty''s wedding either. In Serenity¡¯s eyes, Liberty was her parent and guardian. Zachary did not refuse and replied faintly, "Yes, of course.Let your sister know to meet my family here on Saturday." "Sure." Soon, they were back at Brynfield. With the car parked downstairs, Serenity worked her muscles and started moving the potted nts upstairs while Zachary sought help from the neighborhood security guards.He gave the security guards a lump sum to move these potted nts up. There was no need to strain themselves if a problem could be solved with money. Although Serenity thought Zachary was careless with his money, it was not her ce to point that out since they were still strangers to each other. In a way, she could take it as him trying to be nice and take the load off her. The money spent was kind of worth it, she guessed. One corner of the balcony was quickly filled with flowers. Zachary walked the security guards to the door while Serenity tried to visualize her concept at the balcony. The balcony was huge. Even though she bought a trunk full of nts, they only upied a corner. The flower stands had not been put up, and she was running out of time.She would have to get to it after getting off work earlyter today. "What''s the matter?" "The balcony is too big.I¡¯m not getting the picture I¡¯m visualizing." Zachary took a nce around. Yeah, she was right. His voice was t. "What visuals are you expecting? Are you thinking about a mini garden?" Serenity bobbed her head. "Are you going to your sister''s now? You should head aver.I''ll head back to the florist and get more flowers." Serenity looked at the time and asked, "What time do you start work? "l can leave for work a littleter." Chapter 22 Chapter 22 Chapter 22 Serenity figured senior white cors like Zachary could enjoy a special privilege or two. Pulling out the debit card, Serenity gave it to Zachary and urged, "Don''t forget to bargain the price to half with the florist." Zachary stuffed the debit card back into her hands. "I have money." Serenity looked at him curiously and left the subject at that. Since she had to get to her sister''s ce, Serenity reminded Zachary to get the best deals before grabbing her keys and rushed out. Unbeknownst to her, her man waited until she was gone before taking a short video of the balcony to send it to the Yorks¡¯ estate''s head gardener, Henry.It did not take long for Henry to return the call. "Sir" "You''ve seen the video, Henry.How many pots of flowers do you think I Need to turn the balcony into a mini garden? Pick a few cheaper ones in your greenhouse.I''m looking for the fast-growing kind with huge and intricate petals.Deliver them to unit 808 on the eighth floor of block B at Brynfield" While getting flowers with Serenity, Zachary noticed that she was drawn to big blooms with borated coro.She did not care for the generic petal shapes. "I''ll need you to file a list of charges too." Henry replied, "...Sure." "Deliver them by this evening." "Definitely, sir" Mr.Zachary''s words were hismand. "Move them upstairs to the balcony.Don''t worry about the rest." It was up to Serenity to arrange the flowers to her liking.She might not like it if he took over her vision. Henry acknowledged courteously. Zachary quickly hung up the call. The unsuspecting Serenity got takeout breakfast for her sister and nephew like yesterday. Feeling the bliss, she even bought her nephew a children¡¯s battery-powered bike. "Ant Swer" Serenity was greeted by Sonny''s beautiful voice the moment she stepped into the house. "Sonny, why are you up so early today? Come and see what I got you." ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "Bwike." Her nephew, Sonny, had limited vocabry as he was only two years old. Sonny toddled over and circled the battery-powered bike, expressing his joy through his actions rather than words. Liberty came out of the bathroom, after having tossed hers and her husband''s clothes into the washing machine.Her son''s clothes were hand-washed though. "Seren, you spent your money on unnecessary stuff again" "I bought my little nephew a toy.That''s not unnecessary." Putting down the breakfast takeouts, Serenity went to pick her nephew up and put him on the battery- powered bike.She taught Sonny how to ride the bike. Sonny was a bright child, quickly getting the hang of riding the bike around the living room. "Liberty, I bought you and Sonny breakfast." "I set an rmst night, so I could get up early this morning to make breakfast.Your brother-inw had a hearty meal before leaving for work." Liberty''s face beamed as her son was having a st. "You don''t have to bring us breakfast every time you visit.You''re married now.You have your own family.Your husband might have a problem if you keep spending your money on us." She did not want Serenity''s life to revolve around her. Chapter 23 Chapter 23 Chapter 23 "A bit of breakfast won''t hurt the bank.Liberty, I won''t overdo it" Serenity had adequate ie to help her sister, but she would not pour her entire paycheck into doing it as she had her mind set on bing a homeowner. "Has Sonny eaten?" Serenity asked while feeling Sonny''s temperature.His body temperature was in the normal range. "He had milk.I have chicken soup simmering on the stove.I''ll feed him someter when it''s ready." Liberty took excellent care of her son. "Zachary will be home in two days.His parents will be visiting this Saturday.Come to Brynfield with my brother-inw on the same day for dinner with the family.Can you let him know about this?" Liberty asked happily, "Is your husbanding back from his business trip?" "He said he''ll be back Friday night." "Alright.I''ll keep my husband in the loop." Liberty had a clear idea of why her sister decided to get married. Although she went along with Serenity¡¯s lie, Liberty had her concerns about Serenity''s other half.She had never seen Serenity¡¯s husband in person. Liberty would not take the meeting with the inws lightly. After spending some time at her sister''s ce, Serenity left for work. Once Serenity was gone, Liberty fed her son chicken soup and took him out for a stroll and shopping.She wanted to get new clothes for the meeting with the inws. Liberty dressed down as a stay-at-home mom, and her clothes were bargain hunts from warehouse sales. Back when she was single, Liberty was very particr about the way she lived her life. Although her clothes were not big-timebels, they were tailored. Now that she had devoted her life into having a family, she stopped working and lost her source of ie. Her savings were drained into the house''s renovations. Now, Liberty counted her pennies and spent the money on the family rather than herself. To make a good impression on her sister''s inws, Liberty bought two dresses a little on the upscale side, together with a suit and tie for her husband. She was walking out of the clothing store when a call from her husband came in. "Hello, honey." Holding her son, Liberty pushed the stroller and took the call. "what did you spend on again? It''s over a thousand bucks.That''s more than half of the allowance gone.I''m telling you now that we''re going halves on the living expenses.The thousand bucks are on you.You''re on your own if you don¡¯t have enough tost the month." Like Zachary, Liberty''s husband, Hank Brown gave a supplementary card to his wife.He would transfer cash into the ount every month for household expenses. However, the ount was tied to his mobile phone number, so he would receive a message whenever Liberty used the card. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. The groceries for a family of three were kept under a hundred bucks as Hank transferred three thousand dors into the ount every month. Liberty would have a couple hundred to spare if she spent the money wisely. Nevertheless, it was hard to stretch the three thousand bucks should the child fall sick. Since it slipped Liberty''s mind to bring along her own bank card, Liberty had to swipe the card used for household expenses. It never crossed her mind that her husband would be on her case the moment she stepped out of the clothing store. Chapter 24 Chapter 24 Chapter 24 "I saw you made a transaction in a clothing store.Did you buy clothes? What did you get for it to amount to a thousand bucks? Can''t you cut down on your spending? Do you think I have it easy making money? "I have a house mortgage, car loan, and my parents¡¯ living allowance to think about.Sonny needs milk powder and diapers too! It''s not like you''re contributing to the expenses.I''m on my own.Can''t you reduce the expenditure and be a little understanding of me?" Liberty stopped walking and waited until her husband was done ying the me game before exining to him, "Seren said her husband will be back on Friday. The families will meet and have dinner on Saturday. As Seren''s family, I hope the meeting will go well. The clothes I have don''t fit me anymore, so I bought two dresses. "I also bought you a new suit and tie.Hank, we''ll have to skip going to your mom''s this weekend." Following her rification, Hank murmured something under his breath. Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. Unable to catch what he said, Liberty asked, "Come again, Hank?" "Nothing.Sure, we must dress well to meet the family, but you didn¡¯t have to get two outfits.One''s enough.Hurry up and get on a diet.It''s time you lose some weight so you can put on the old clothes.You have some nice ones.It''s a shame you can''t wear them anymore. "Look at you.All you do is eat, sleep, and spend.Are you a pig? At least a pig can be sold for its meat.You''re a worthless pig." Reflecting on his wife''s chunky figure, Hank did not hide the disdain in his tone. When it came to getting intimate, Hank would not even touch his wife unless he had a hard time keeping it in his pants. The savvy, hot, and beautiful Liberty before was long gone! It never urred to him that the three short years of marriage turned his wife into a whale! His mom and sister were right about Liberty pigging out. It was not like she was earning an ie. Liberty brought nothing to the table. "Mr.Brown." As Hank''s secretary entered the office and greeted him with a sweet voice, Hank immediately told his wife, "Liberty, I need to get back to work.Hurry home and make dinner.I don¡¯t want toe home without a meal ready.God knows what you''re up to every day at home." After chewing his wife out, Hank terminated the call before Liberty could say her goodbye. "Mr.Brown, please go through this document and sign if everything''s in ce." The young secretary slipped a document toward Hank. "Sure." Hank took the document for a look and put his signature on the verified papers.He handed the papers back to the secretary, together with a Tiffany box he pulled out from the drawer. Hank gave the secretary a smoldering gaze and said, "Jess, I was passing by the jeweler on my way home from closing a dealst night.I went and got you a gold ne.What do you think?" Jessica took the Tiffany box and opened it.It was indeed a gold ne. With a smile across her face, she pulled the ne out of the box. Getting up, Hank walked around the desk and came behind her.He grabbed the ne from her hands and said thoughtfully, "Let me help you with that." "Alright" Hank put the gold ne on Jessica and kissed her cheek before paying her apliment. "Beautiful.The ne looks good on you." Getting on her feet, Jessica turned around and wrapped her arms around his neck. She pulled in for a kiss on his cheek and coyly expressed her gratitude, "Thank you, Mr.Brown.I love the ne." "Call me Hank when no one¡¯s around." Hank pulled her close in his arms as his somewhat handsome face revealed his animalistic desire.He drew close to her ear and whispered something. Jessica immediately pushed him away while pouting her lips. "You have a wife and kid.We agreed on a tonic rtionship and nothing else." Chapter 25 Chapter 25 Chapter 25 Jessica took pleasure in her boss¡¯ courtship and preferential treatment, epting the flowers and gifts as they came.However, she refused to cross the line of making out with her boss. This was not a matter of protecting her chastity, but rather a means for Hank to yearn for something he so desired. Jessica''s eyes were not set on bing a mistress, but rather the rightful woman next to Hank. Nevertheless, Hank had been in a rtionship with his wife for many years since college. Liberty used to be the finance director of thepany, but she quit her job to be a full-time housewife by the time Jessica joined thepany. Jessica had never met Liberty, but through the mouths of old colleagues, she got to know that Liberty gave birth to a son a year into the marriage and became a stay-at-home mom since. It was said that Liberty became way out of shape after giving birth. Hank had whined about his obese wife more than once. Jessica muttered to herself, ¡®Liberty is such a silly cow. She should''ve watched her figure even after marriage. No man¡¯s going to stand by their overweight wife¡¯ It was not Jessica''s fault for going after Mr.Brown. Liberty was to me for not putting in self-care and repulsed her husband. All Liberty did all day was waste away money. Mr.Brown could spend a little more on Jessica if Liberty cut down her spending.Hank scowled at the mention of Liberty. "She''s a pig.I feel sick to my stomach every time I look at her.I would''ve divorced her a long time had it not been for my son.I want my son to have both his parents in his life." On the other hand, Serenity had a nice figure.She was younger and more beautiful than Liberty. Despite growing up in a rural area, Serenity carried herself with grace, standing out more than Liberty. Of course, Liberty had that certain charm too in the past. All those extra pounds took that away. Liberty was in the dark about her husband''s little affair with his secretary. Since Liberty came to know that her husband had a secretary, she thought nothing about a woman''s sweet voice on the other end of the line. Putting her son back in the stroller, Liberty began to push and move forward. With her head in the clouds, Liberty rammed the stroller into a stationary Maybach. The damage to the luxury saloon was not that bad, but it still left a scratch on the body of the vehicle. Liberty freaked out when she got a good look at the car''s logo. It so happened the owner of the vehicle arrived at the scene.He came over quickly. "I''m sorry, Mister.I''m so sorry." N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Liberty apologized repeatedly. The man, in his mid-thirties, was dressed in ck and had a rather attractive face.However, a scar across the right side of his face added a menacing vibe to his presence. Sonny was so terrified by the man that he turned around and reached out to his mom, asking for hugs. The scar-faced man checked his car before turning his attention back to Liberty and the child. Although looking upset, he did not lose his temper and yell at them. The man said sullenly, "Leave me your contact number.I''ll im from you the repair and repaint charges." "I''m sorry, Mister" The scar-faced man fell silent for a while before uttering, "Things happen, but an apology doesn''t fix anything.Watch where you''re going next time.You can pay for the damage to my car, but what are you going to do if anything happens to your child?" "l understand.It¡¯s my fault.I''ll watch out next time." Liberty pulled out her phone. "Mister, can you share with me your number? I''l call you, so you can save my number.I''ll pay for your car''s repair." The scar-faced man informed her about his contact number. Liberty dialed the number and waited until she heard a ring before hanging up. "what''s your name?" "My name is Liberty.Liberty Hunt." After saving Liberty''s name, the scar-faced man waved her off. "Alright then.You''re free to leave." Liberty apologized once more and pushed her son away from the scene.She was going to get it from her husband when she returned home tonight. Chapter 26 Chapter 26 Chapter 26 Meanwhile, a train of luxury sedans cruised along with one of them being a Rolls Royce. It was Zachary¡¯s private ride. With the convoy stopping at the side of the road, Zachary rolled down his window and looked at the scar-faced man. He asked, "What are you doing here, Duncan?" "I went to get something, but I came back to a scratch on my car." "Did you catch the perpetrator?" Out of impulse, Zachary asked, "Do you need my help to catch whoever vandalized your car?" N?velDrama.Org owns this text. "It''s fine.I got her number.I''ll im the damages from her after I get my car fixed.Wiltspoon is my city.She can run but she can¡¯t hide" Returning to his car, Duncan Lewis started the engine and told Zachary, "I''m off" Without another word, Zachary wound the windows back up. The Rolls Royce followed by its convoy quickly drove away. Time ticked away quickly. It was soon evening. Once the afterschool rush hour had calmed down, Serenity intended to make dinner for her and Jasmine in the kitchen when she received a call from Liberty. "Seren, I''ve been thinking about it all day.I¡¯ming to you because I''m out of options." "What happened, Liberty?" "I was pushing the stroller and identally left a scratch on a Maybach when I went shopping in the afternoon.It must be expensive to repair this sort of car.My stash probably won''t cover it.I told your brother-inw about it, but he yelled at me to fix my own problem." With her heart sinking to the pit of her stomach, Serenity inquired, "Take a deep breath, Liberty.How much is the repair?" "I don''t know yet.The car owner took my number and said he''ll call me when the car is fixed." "All that matters is that you and Sonny are fine.We can pay for the repairs.I''ll lend you the money.Don''t worry about it." Liberty choked with sobs. "Seren, I''m such a loser.I can¡¯t believe I messed up" "It¡¯s only an ident, Liberty.Don¡¯t feel bad.Money is just material things.Be thankful no one got hurt." Once Liberty calmed down, Serenity turned to her best friend, "Jasmine, I need to rush home." "Okay." Having found out that Liberty needed support, Jasmine urged her best friend to get home. Serenity raced to her sister''s ce and sat with her the whole night before reaching home at midnight. Zachary''s deadpan questioning echoed across the room when she opened the door to the house. "Why are you back sote?" While closing the door, Serenity answered, "My sister got into a bit of a fix." The tension along Zachary¡¯s facial lines eased up a little as he asked faintly, "What happened to your sister?" "She went shopping this afternoon when she identally knocked the stroller onto a luxury car parked by the road.Since it''s a scratch, the repair should cost a lot.My sister doesn''t have a job or an ie.She''s worried she can¡¯t afford the repairs." There was a flicker in Zachary''s dark eyes. Was it possible that Serenity¡¯s sister damaged Duncan''s car? "What type of car was it? What''s the damage?" Keeping a straight face, Zachary probed. "My sister said it was a Maybach.I guess it must be expensive to fix a scratch on that kind of car." Serenity was uncertain how much of a damage to the pocket it would be. Chapter 27 Chapter 27 Chapter 27 Zachary remained silent. The person who chipped the paint off Duncan''s car was his new sister-inw. Zachary had not met his sister-inw. "It''ste, Mr.York.I¡¯m going to turn in for the night." Despite having reassured her sister that everything would be fine, Serenity was feeling the blues as she did not know what to expect from the damages. She said goodnight to Zachary and went to her room. By the time Zachary opened his mouth to say something, Serenity had already disappeared into her room. The flowers on the balcony... Well, Serenity would sort out the floral arrangement when she saw them in the morning. However, Zachary was feeling weird about it. It was as though he was waiting to be praised after doing a good thing. "Mr.York." With the door swung open, Serenity popped back out and asked, "I see you got the washing machines.How much were they?" "I spent seven thousand on two washing machines." Serenity did aparison to the washing machine at her sister''s ce. Seeing that the price was within reason, she said nothing. "Serenity." Zachary called her before she could close the door to her bedroom. "The thing with your sister is not an issue.You can let me know if you''re short of cash.I can lend your sister some." Serenity replied gratefully, "Thank you, Mr.York.We''ll see once the billes.I''ll sign an IOU for my sister if we can¡¯t scrape enough money together." They did not know each other well since they had only been newlyweds for barely a few days. Still, Serenity was thankful that Zachary was willing to help out when her sister was in need. "It''ste.You should get some rest.Don¡¯t dwell on it.Things will eventually work out for the better." "You too.Goodnight." Serenity said goodnight again and returned to her bedroom. Zachary sat in the living room for a while before moving to his room. Closing the door behind him, Zachary whipped out his phone and called Duncan. "Are you asleep, Duncan?" Duncan answered with a smile, "No way.I only sleep at three in the morning.What''s up? Are you buying me drinks? Come to my ce.I''ll share my wine collection with you."This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. "How much is it to repaint your car?" Zachary did not get close to the car for a look, so he had no idea how bad the damages were to Duncan''s vehicle. "It''s not a bad scratch.Ten thousand bucks should cut it." "Are you submitting a im to your insurance?" Chapter 28 Chapter 28 Chapter 28 "It''s only a minor issue, so I can''t be bothered to submit a im.Why the sudden question, Zachary?" Zachary fell silent before uttering, "The woman who scratched your car this morning is the sister of my nana¡¯¡®s lifesaver.The sisters only have each other, and the woman is a housewife without an ie.They''re worried they can¡¯t pay for your car''s repairs." Duncan replied, *...Talk about a coincidence.I can¡¯t believe she was the sister of your grandma''s lifesaver.How did you find out?" Zachary lied. "My nana is fond of her lifesaver and often seekspanionship in her.Nana had to ask why she was looking blue today, so Hunt told her what happened." "Hunt? Is that herst name? The woman who damaged my car is Liberty Hunt.What''s the name of your grandma''s lifesaver?" "Serenity Hunt." "They must be sisters, judging by the name.I''ll drop the matter since she''s the sister of your grandma''s lifesaver.The money means nothing to me, but I''m the victim after all.I can¡¯t be so generous as to let her off scot-free.She might knock onto another person''s car if this teaches her nothing" Aged thirty-five, Duncan Lewis was the fourth son of the Lewis family. Although he had not taken over the family business, Duncan made a name for himself and established Lewis & Co, managing multiple subsidiary businesses. Duncan was a self-made billionaire. Duncan had a forthright and loyal character. He had walked the fine line between both sides of thew during his younger days. The scar on his face was a testimony to his rough past. Nevertheless, Duncan could not be bothered to go under the knife and get rid of the scar as he believed the terrifying scar added character. "Since you want to teach her a lesson, you can im from her if it¡¯s not a lot.I hope you could give her a break on my nana¡¯s sake and charge less." Ten thousand dors were nothing in the eyes of wealthy men like Zachary and Duncan. Even without a job and a source of ie, Liberty could afford ten thousand dors by borrowing around. "It''s not a lot.Just ten thousand dors.I''ll get her to pay half then.A few thousand bucks really bite for a housewife like her.I hope it''ll remind her to watch out on the road and not bump into other people''s cars." It was a good thing his car was parked by the side of the road. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. The life of an adorable child could be taken if she were caught between ongoing traffic. "Thanks, Duncan." "It''s a small matter.Come to think of it, your grandma seems to like that Serenity girl.Although she saved your grandma''s life, she could¡¯ve been awarded a lump sum.Why did your grandma stay in touch with her? Grandma May even told you to intercede for them." Zachary replied faintly, "In a way, Nana is using us of not spending enough time with her." Grandma May was eager for her grandsons to settle down in life as she wanted to fill the house with great-grandchildren¡¯sughter. She said something along the lines of awarding fifty million for a great-grandson and five hundred million for a great-granddaughter. The Yorks had not been blessed with daughters or granddaughters. Grandma May had been looking forward to a granddaughter, but her daughters-inw gave her three grandsons each. Her grandsons were her only hope to get great-granddaughters. Duncan paused and said, "You know how the elderly can be.When my nana was still around, she harassed me every day to get married.My brothers and I were so fed up that we stayed away from home.We miss her nagging now that she''s gone." People often did not realize what they had until it was gone. Out of his three siblings, Duncan was the remaining single in the family. The entire family, including his young nephew, badgered Duncan about bringing home a wife. "I mean, you''re thirty-five, pushing forty.Of course, they''re going to be on your back about taking the vow.If you wait any longer, you''ll be old by the time your child is born.People would mistake your child to be your grandchild" Zachary poked fun at him. Truth be told, Zachary would not venture into married life so soon if Nana had not gotten under his skin. Plus, Zachary was the most dutiful grandson to his grandmother. Marriage would only be in the cards when he hit thirty-five. Despite tying the knot, Zachary had not made the decision to spend the rest of his life with Serenity. Just like what he told Nana, he needed to be the judge of Serenity¡¯s character before he could pour his emotions and invest into the rtionship. Duncan burst outughing. "I''ll spoil my child like a grandchild." Zachary was speechless. Chapter 29 Chapter 29 Chapter 29 Serenity tossed and turned all night as stressful dreams were triggered. The disturbed sleep drained her energy by the time she woke up the following morning. As usual, Serenity hung herundry on the balcony after turning the washing machine on before bed. It was then she realized that stainless steel rods had been installed on the balcony. They were for her to air theundry. There were also a variety of potted nts stacked on the huge balcony. Many of them had bloomed and budded. No matter the size, the petals were all the intricate kind. Serenity''s attention was immediately drawn to the flowers.She hung her clothes out and got straight to assembling the flower stands she bought yesterday morning. Serenity then disyed the potted nts on the stands. While busting her gut over the task, Serenity got a crawling sensation of a pair of prying eyes. She looked up and met Zachary¡¯s unfazed gaze. His eyes were nothing short of piercing and emotionless. Serenity had learned to live with his nk face now as they were married for a few days. "Morning, Mr.York." Serenity said hello andplimented him, "Mr.York, these flowers are great.You did a good job!" She could trust Zachary to get the job done. Zachary muttered in a husky voice, "You can tell me if you encounter any problems in the future." Her requests were a piece of cake to him. "Sure." With a smile, Serenity went back to fiddling with the nts. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. "Where did you get these nts? They''re beautiful." Zachary lied, "I visited quite a few florists.I can¡¯t remember the shops." "Ah-¡¯ Serenity did not press further on the matter as she had been more than happy with the results he produced. "What are we having for breakfast today?" Now that he mentioned it, it dawned on Serenity that she missed the most important meal of the day. Whipping out her phone, she realized it was past seven o''clock. Rising to her feet, Serenity said embarrassedly, "I forgot about getting breakfast this morning, Mr.York.There''s still time to go and grab a quick takeout now.I''ll get us something while you brush your teeth.What do you fancy?" Zachary answered tly, "I''m not fussy.You can decide." Even if he were, Zachary had to go along with her choices, or he would blow his cover.His favorite food was not at an affordable price. "Alright" Serenity swiftly went downstairs and rode her e-bike out to get breakfast. It did not take long before she returned.She bought bacon wraps with cheese, hash browns, and apple juice. Zachary stared at the breakfast, unable to bring himself to take a bite. Serenity was oblivious to that fact as she wolfed down her share afterying the breakfast spread.She then went back toplete her vision of a mini garden at the balcony. After a long silence, Zachary reached out to pick up the bacon wrap and took a bite. The wrap might be heavy on the grease, but the taste was great. Only God knew if the fat in the bacon was healthy or cooked under sanitary conditions. Never mind. An asional wrap would not kill. At this moment, Zachary regretted his decision to conceal his identity as the heir of the Yorks of Wiltspoon.He was giving himself problems by trying to build amon wage eamer¡¯s image. "Serenity." Chapter 30 Chapter 30 Chapter 30 "What''s the matter, Mr.York?" Serenity''s voice was heard from the balcony. Chewing on the wrap, Zachary made his way to the balcony. "Your sister''s thing is nothing to worry about.The car in question happens to belong to one of our important clients.It dawned on mest night, so I gave Mr.Lewis a call.He said the repairs cost about ten thousand dors" Although she appeared rather lively dabbling the nts, Zachary could tell that she was not at her best, likely due to ack of sleepst night. The matter with her sister was the cause of trouble in slumbend. Serenity lifted her chin and observed him munching on the wrap. While thinking to herself that Zachary was easy to appease in the food department, Serenity asked, "How can you be sure it''s the car of yourpany''s client?" Her sister was clueless about the car owner''s name. All she knew was that he was big, strong, and had an intimidating scar on his face. Sonny was scared stiff of the man. "I attended to Mr.Lewis when he came to our office yesterday morning.I noticed there was a scratch on his car, so I asked him about it.Mr.Lewis told me that a woman with a baby knocked a stroller onto his car. "I was thinking if it could be a coincidence when you talked about itst night, so I called Mr.Lewis.Is your sister called Liberty? Mr.Lewis got your sister''s number.He said he''ll send your sister the bill once he gets his hands on the repair cost.It''s probably about ten thousand bucks." After setting up a pot, Serenity stood upright and uttered, "That''s my sister''s name.That''s quite a coincidence.Mr.York, did Mr.Lewis really say the repairs would be approximately ten thousand?" Her sister could manage ten thousand bucks. "I asked him, and that was what he said." Serenity heaved a sigh of relief. "That''s great.Thank you, Mr.York." The sisters¡¯ biggest worry was the cost of the damage. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Now that Serenity found out that it was only going to set them back by ten thousand dors, the sun over the horizon seemed awfully bright. At the same time, Serenity realized that they might be strangers before, but postnuptial, Zachary had her back whenever she sought help from him. Zachary was a capable man.He was like a shoulder she could lean on. "You''re wee." With relief spreading across her face, it put Zachary in a good mood too. "Ring, ring, ring..." Serenity''s phone rang.She picked up the call. It was from her sister. "Liberty, I was just about to call you.I told my husband about your incident.By a stroke of luck, the car owner turns out to be one of Zachary¡¯s clients.Zachary asked about the repairs, and it shoulde to around ten thousand bucks.Can you afford that?" Serenity barely slept a wink over the matter. As the party involved, Liberty must have had a rougher night. Thepensation would not have been a concern in the past when she J was earning a high wage. Nevertheless, she was now a full-time I housewife without a source of ie. Her husband med her for getting into trouble and sulkily announced that Liberty was on her own. Of course, Liberty had a harder time fretting over it than Serenity. "I can manage if it''s around ten thousand bucks.I saved half of the allowance you gave me without telling my husband.It should be enough to cover the repair cost. "Oh, I actually called you to talk about this.The owner of the car sent me a text message at two o''clock in the morning.He gave me an ount number to wire nine thousand bucks into.I saw the message when I got up.I wanted to tell you this, so you don''t have to worry about it. "Now it seems Mr.Lewis is not expecting me to pay the whole thing." Liberty only had to foot nine thousand dors out of a bill that could have cost over ten thousand dors. Mr.Lewis probably asked for less on ount of her new brother-inw. So far, Zachary scored a brownie point in Liberty''s books. Since the unfortunate incident, all her husband did was call her a troublemaker and say it was her problem to solve. They were already splitting the household expenses, so he left the bill to Liberty to figure it out on her own. Chapter 31 Chapter 31 Chapter 31 On the other hand, Zachary spoke to Mr.Lewis on behalf of Liberty and probably put in the good word for her too, so Mr.Lewis knocked a few thousand dors off. Of course, nine thousand bucks were a great deal of money to Liberty now. It would serve as a painful lesson to keep her eyes peeled on the street and stay away from luxury sedans! "Is your husbanding back soon?" asked Liberty. "Yeah.He''ll be back tomorrow." "Great.My husband and I will be there ahead of time.Are you cooking? I''ll help out." Having lived independently with her sister for many years, Liberty had so much on the ball from her career, and social life, to domestic life. Now that she was held down by a child and without an ie, her husband pressured her to be a housewife. The sisters exchanged small talk on the phone before ending the call. "Mr.York, do you workte every day?" "Why?" "It''s almost the weekend that Nana and your parents wille over for dinner.We need to spruce up the ce.I''m thinking of looking at furniture in the next few days and getting what we need." Zachary went quiet. His job took up a lot of his time.It was hard to find time in his busy schedule to shop for furniture with her. Faced with his silence, Serenity showed understanding. "I can get them myself if you don¡¯t have the time." Zachary replied, "Alright.You''re thedy of the house.You can make decisions over household affairs.Just let me in on the bigger things." He had no time to spare for every single trivial matter of the house. "Sure.I''ll let Jasmine know that I won''t being in for work today.I''ll get the stuff." She needed to sort out their home. Zachary was without a word. Turning on his heel, he returned to his bedroom. It did not take long before he emerged from his room and said, "I''m going to work." "Drive safe," Serenity casually cried. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. With the wrapped hash brown and apple juice still in hand, Zachary took off. Getting behind the wheel of his undercover MPV, Zachary drove out of Brynfield. Out of the neighborhood, Zachary pulled up at the side of the road where his Rolls Royce and convoy were parked. "Sin" The bodyguards swiftly got down from their cars. Shielding Zachary with their bodies, they approached the Rolls Royce and opened the door for him. A bodyguard respectfully asked, "Should I throw it away for you, Sir?" He was talking about the breakfast Zachary was holding. Zachary gave the uneaten hash brown to the bodyguard without a word. The bodyguards were free to do whatever with it. With the car door shut, the car purred its silent engine and merged into traffic. Serenity spent a day running about before she filled all the missing pieces toplete the home. The online order of kitchenware was also delivered to the house. Zachary arrived homete that night, and by then, Serenity was fast asleep. Careful not to wake her, he walked around the house and feasted his eyes on her interpretation of a home. The woman took time to smell the roses for sure. Perhaps she was not a scheming witch. The woman might not be looking for anything out of the marriage but a ce to call home. After all, she had been living under her sister and brother-inw¡¯s roof. Of course, Zachary needed more than a few days to observe Serenity''s character. He would not be so quick to p abel on her. Only time could reveal a person''s true colors. Her true nature would either shine through or rear its ugly head through the couple''s day-to-day interaction. Time passed very quickly at the busiest times. Soon, it was Saturday. Chapter 32 Chapter 32 Chapter 32 Last night, Serenity stayed upte for Zachary toe home so she could make ns with him to shop for groceries on Saturday morning. Serenity called Nana the night before to get a headcount. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. As it turned out, Zachary¡¯s brothers and cousins were alsoing along. The way Nana saw it, Serenity was part of the York family now that she was married to Zachary. By meeting the family, Nana wanted to bring together everybody to introduce the family tree. Since there was going to be a lot of food, Serenity would not be able to carry all the groceries on her own. Hence, she requested Zachary to take her to the market by car. Like the other day, Zachary was startled awake by Serenity''s morning call at six o''clock sharp. Feeling grumpy from the early rise, Zachary had to bottle up his grievance to stop himself from yelling at Serenity. "Mr.York." Serenity''s clear voice washed away some of the unpleasantness in the morning. With eyebrows pinched together, Zachary answered gruffly, "Give me ten minutes." "Sure.I made some pancakes.Come and have some when you''re washed up.We can get to the market after breakfast." Zachary asked, "...What time did you get up?" It was only six in the morning. Yet, Serenity had breakfast ready. "About five." It was time-consuming for one person to prepare a feast. Serenity made an early start to get the ball rolling. Without another word, Zachary terminated the call. She did not take the family event lightly. Zachary was more than pleased with her attitude toward meeting his family. Ten minutester, Zachary emerged at the dining table, dressed in casual weal. She was enjoying her breakfast. With a smile, she said, "Try my pancakes.My sister said I make the best pancakes." Zachary took a nce at the breakfast spread. As the pancakes looked sumptuous and appetizing, he finished a whole te. It was delicious indeed.She was a good cook. He was lucky in that sense. Zachary felt morefortable having her home-cooked meal than takeouts. Serenity cleared the table and washed the dishes in the kitchen. "Mr.York, do you only have dark-colored clothes?" Zachary''s silence was his admission. "What''s your size? I''ll add color to your wardrobe when I go shopping next time.You have a stern face, to begin with, so it''s hard to approach you when you wear dark colors too." Seeing chills in his eyes, Zachary revealed his feelings through an icy voice, "Stay out of my wardrobe choices!" He loved dark colors, so if she had a problem with that, she could choose not to look at it for all he cared! Sensing the indifference and displeasure in his tone, Serenity kept to herself before breaking the silence. "I''m sorry.I went too far.To each their own.I shouldn''t force my habits on you." Zachary left the conversation at that. He took strides to the balcony. The calming view of the mini garden saw the tension on his face easing up. A few minutester, Serenity grabbed her purse and cried, "Let''s go, Mr.York" Zachary returned from the balcony without a word and quietly took his keys. The couple left the house together. They were prudent not to bring up the unhappy episode from just now. The couple was getting to know each other, still figuring things out together in a shared living space. There were bound to be more unexpected shes between themter on. Serenity had an eye for detail and sorted the menu for today. She had even listed the ingredients. It would be a breeze getting the items with a shopping list ready. Zachary thought highly of Serenity¡¯s conduct in life. Chapter 33 Chapter 33 Chapter 33 The shopping trip took two hours. ustomed to the convenience of five-star transportation, Zachary was exhausted from the two-hour shopping as Serenity''s personal porter despite taking self-defense sses and keeping a fitness routine. He would rather be buried under a pile of work and meetings than go shopping with a woman. As the car came to a stop, Serenity got a call from Grandma May before she stepped out of the car. "Are you home, Serenity? We''re downstairs." Serenity replied with a smile, "We just returned from the market, Nana.Wait for us.We''ll be right there." "Did you go to the market with Zack?" N?velDrama.Org owns this text. That put a smile on Nana¡¯s face. Nana thought to herself, ¡®To think my callous and stuck-up grandson put aside his pride and go shopping with Serenity at the market. Since he wanted to y the pauper, Zack might as well step into the shoes of an ordinary person. "Yeah.We went to get groceries." "Zack has always been busy with work, so he¡¯s never been to the market.It''s a good thing to bring him around.Serenity, make Zack do the heavy lifting.He''s strong.Don''t tire yourself." Zachary began to doubt whether Serenity was Grandma May''s birth grandchild instead. As Serenity got down from the car, she held the phone with one hand and opened the rear door with another. Popping her head in, she grabbed a foldable wagon and gestured for Zachary to unfold it. "Don''t worry, Nana.I won''t exert myself." Since the wagon was not big enough to carry all the groceries, Zachary was left to haul the rest. Serenity took Nana''s advice and had it easy throughout their walk home. "Nana, we''reing right now." "Sure.See youter." Nana hung up the call. Serenity slipped her phone into her pocket and pulled the wagon while talking to Zachary who had his hands full. "Come on, Mr.York.Nana and your family are waiting downstairs." Walking alongside Serenity, Zachary called her attention to an important point. "Don¡¯t address me as Mr.York in front of Nana and the rest.Call me Zachary." "Sure thing." Serenity was not going to obsess over a form of address. Soon, Nana and the rest of the family caught sight of the returning couple. Serenity pulled her wagon of fruits, vegetables, meat, and beverages while the finest man in his generation of the Yorks had bags after bags hanging off his arms. It was a beautiful visual as the married couple walked side by side. "Hahaha¡ª" Rowan, the youngest of Zachary''s generation, was fifteen years younger than Zack and still in high school. Not one to hide behind his emotions, Rowan burst intoughter. As far as Rowan could remember, he was most afraid of his stone-cold and strict cousin. Zack always carried himself with an air of haughtiness and aloofness, even toward his family. Rowan did not expect to see the day Zack would fall off his high horse too. "Rowan!" Nana shouted at Rowan, but she could not hide the joy behind her smiling eyes either. She now believed that it was not a bad idea for Zachary to keep his identity a secret to observe Serenity''s character. At least, they got to see another side to Zack. "I can''t help it, Nana.Let me let it out for a little longer." Rowan said amid chuckles, "Serenity should get Zack to hold a spade in one hand and a hoe with another while piggybacking a baby." Everybody was speechless. Chapter 34 Chapter 34 Chapter 34 It was an inconceivable mental image. "Be alert and don''t expose our identities to Serenity.Son, say that you don''t have pensions.You graw vegetables and flowers for a living. "Get your stories straight.Zack will go after you if you blow your cover.Don''te crying to me then." Seeing the fun in her grandson''s ns, Nana wasmitted to helping Zack stay in character. Nana had no doubt that Serenity was a good kid and not driven by greed. At her age, Nana was a good judge of character. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. "Got it? everybody answered.They had met Serenity before as thetter saved Nana¡¯s life.As Nana¡®s sons and daughters-inw, they were nothing but thankful toward Serenity. Zachary¡¯s mom mostly kept to herself as she was not in favor of Grandma May nagging her son into marriage. Nevertheless, her resistance was futile as Nana managed to sell her proud son the idea. Sure, Zachary¡¯s mom was grateful that Serenity saved Nana. The whole family had expressed their thanks to Serenity and tried to repay her kindness, to which Serenity declined. To everybody''s surprise, Nana saw something in Serenity and believed thetter was virtuous. Nana then yed matchmaker to the couple and got what she wished for. It was a good thing Zachary only went as far as signing the papers. He wanted to observe Serenity for a while to confirm Nana''s perception of her before he could acknowledge the rtionship. Zachary¡¯s mom hoped that her son and Serenity would split amicably in the end. They were not a match in every single way. Of course, Zachary''¡¯s mom would not do anything to Serenity and let nature take its course for Nana''s sake. "Nana." The young couple drew close. Serenity greeted the olddy, all smiles.She then turned to greet Nana¡¯s sons and daughters-inw. Although Serenity had met them before, it was a fleeting encounter. As for the few young and handsome men, Serenity had not had the pleasure of meeting them. Still, Serenity could guess that they were Zachary¡¯s brothers and cousins. "Serenity, you should call Tania and Liam, Mom and Dad." Nana gleefully told Serenity. Zachary¡¯s mother was Tania Reading. Liam gave his daughter-inw a benign look as he trusted his mothers instinct that Serenity was a good kid. Liam was an open-minded parent, giving his sons all the freedom in the world and never interfering in their personal affairs. Tania, on the other hand, found it hard to ept Serenity as her daughter-inw. Nevertheless, her manners taught her to mask her emotions behind herposed face. Tania responded with a warm smile. Serenity openly addressed Liam and Tania as told. "Nana, let''s get upstairs.It''s hot out here." Zachary said in a husky voice. Nana summoned other family members to help Serenity with the wagon of food while she got Serenity to help her up the stairs despite being able-bodied. Soon, they were at the couple''s humble home. Serenity hosted the family, urging them to take a seat while she served them beverages and fruits. "Came, Serenity.Zack will introduce you around." Nana checked out her grandson''s home. Needless to say, Serenity was the artist behind the cozy home. Pulling Serenity away from retrieving snacks, Nana motioned Zachary to introduce the family¡¯s younger generation to Serenity. Zachary uttered faintly, "You can introduce yourselves to my wife." Starting from the oldest after Zachary to the youngest, the boys greeted Serenity courteously. Chapter 35 Chapter 35 Chapter 35 The ever-friendly Rowan had a st chatting with Serenity. After witnessing Serenity using Zachary as a porter, the boy was on Team Serenity now. Rowan believed he could hide behind Serenity for anything! Liberty and Hank, together with their son, Sonny, arrived a littleter than the Yorks. Since Serenity¡¯s husband knew the car owner whose luxury sedan was scratched by Liberty, the damages only came to nine thousand bucks. Hank did not dare to make light of his new brother-inw. Hank did not take the meeting seriously at first but adopted a different attitude when he actually met with the family. After meeting with Zachary, Hank was in awe of his brother-inw as Zacharymanded the room with his revered presence, more so than his boss could. "Mr.York" All smiles, Hank extended his right hand to Zachary, "Hello, I¡¯m Serenity''s brother-inw" Zachary shook hands with Hank and faintly uttered, "Hello, Hank." He then extended his greetings to Liberty. Liberty''s first impression of Zachary was that he looked well-presented. Although Zachary appeared rather imposing and aloof in person aspared to in the photograph, Liberty was pleased with Serenity''s husband. "Sonny, say Uncle." Liberty taught her son to address Zachary. Sonny was an adorable little guy and had his mother''s dark and bright eyes. It was hard not to be drawn to his curious eyes. Zachary had to ask, "Can I hold him?" Liberty answered in delight, "Sure." She handed her son to Serenity, so Serenity passed the little man to Zachary. Zachary was impressed by Liberty''s thoughtful action as thetter carried herself with decorum. Liberty first had Serenity hold Sonny for Zachary to receive the boy from Serenity to avoid more than necessary physical contact with her new brother-inw during the handoff. Aswfully wedded husband and wife, Zachary and Serenity were not bound by the same society''s norm on physical contact. Zachary carried Sonny upstairs. Despite his limited vocabry, the little man learned the new word right away. Kids, including Rowan, were afraid of and stayed away from Zachary. Hence why Rowan was so eager for Serenity to take him under her wing. However, Zachary did not scare Sonny. Settling in Zachary''s arms, Sonny called him Uncle. The newlyweds weed the family of three into the house and introduced the Yorks to them. Knowing that the sisters lost their parents young and got through life and college with their parents¡¯ insurance, the Yorks had nothing but respect and admiration for Liberty. Although Liberty was a homemaker and out of touch with society, she was acquainted with the world of professionals before marriage. She could tell the Yorks were cultured and closely knit unlike most families from rural areas. Grandma May mentioned that the Yorks were from the countryside. However, her children and grandchildren managed to make something of themselves in the city. Since then, the family moved to the city, but the olddy would often enjoy long stays in their hometown. The Yorks¡¯ estate was on the outskirts, away from the bustling city. The family owned farnd by the estate, so Grandma May''s story about living in the rural area added up. The only thing was Grandma May must be growing money trees instead of fresh produce. With her sister''s family here, Serenity could get a start on lunch. To her surprise, Zachary came to the kitchen to help out. "I can handle it, Mr.York.Why don''t you keep our questspany?" Zachary replied faintly, "My family feels right at home.They''ll do fine without me." "You can chat with my brother-inw." Achill shed in Zachary¡¯s eyes faster than anyone could catch it. Still, he remained distant and responded, "I have nothing inmon to talk about with Hank." This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Hank was a load of trash who could not stop buttering up to Zachary. Hank was probably not all talk since he was a manager of a reputablepany after all. Chapter 36 Chapter 36 Chapter 36 Zachary refused to be associated with Hank, not only because Zachary found the likes of Hank type to be a pain in the neck, but also for Hank''s attitude toward Liberty. Sonny was thirsty, and the milk bottle containing water was right in front of Hank on the coffee table. Instead of grabbing the milk bottle, Hank had to call Liberty all the way there to feed their son water. Today was only their first encounter. Yet, Zachary was able to pick up on Hank''s contempt andck of respect for his wife. Hank believed Liberty had it easy being a stay-at-home mom. Due to his upbringing, Zachary did not take too kindly to men who disrespected their wives. Although he and Serenity got married on the day they met without any feelings involved, Zachary gave Serenity the respect she deserved. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity smiled. "I see.That''s all right." "Kevin''s very articte.Hank won''t feel left out with Kevin around." Looks may be deceiving when it came to Kevin, who ranked third among Zachary¡¯s age group. A wolf in sheep''s clothing, Kevin could strike up a conversation with anyone while scheming against them amid talk. "You can be my kitchen assistant." Zachary was without a word.He came into the kitchen to help out anyway. Both sides of the family were pleased to see the young couple busy in the kitchen. Liberty thought Zachary was sweet toward Serenity. During lunch, everybody raved about Serenity''s cooking after getting a taste of it. Perhaps they were too used to finer delicacies that their ptes were more epting of ordinary home-cooked meals. It was an animated day for sure. The families stayed for dinner before taking off in the evening, returning peace to the house. Serenity walked back into the house, hurled herself onto the sofa, and sprawled across the soft fabric. She told the man who came up from behind her. "Ow.I can barely stand up straight." Zachary remained quiet. It was only a passingment, and Serenity did not expect Zachary to act on it. In fact, she would find Zachary pretentious if he were to say something nice. Zachary quietly tidied up the ce as Sonny made quite a mess as any child would. After clearing the living room, Zachary went into the kitchen and put on the apron hanging off the hook behind the door. His next task was to wash the pile of tes. "Zachary might be a man of few words, but he''s very considerate.Seren, enjoy your married life." Watching as Zachary went to wash the dishes in the kitchen, Serenity''s mind harked back to her private conversation with Liberty. Liberty approved of Zachary. Serenity was enjoying a moment of rxation when a thought hit her.She sprung from the sofa and bolted to the kitchen.She then saw a sink of bubbles... "Just how much dishwashing liquid did you use?" Serenity could not hold back theughter. Zachary could not be more embarrassed. "I poured half a bottle in by ident" Zachary averted his gaze in case his red face was a dead giveaway.He really did pour too much by ident. It was not that he was a klutz at washing dishes. As the head of the York household, Zachary had ess to the mostprehensive and finest education and training. So of course, he was self-reliant and self-sufficient. However, it had been a long time since he handled house chores. Zachary was just a little rusty and poured a little extra. He was trying to rinse the bubbles out for God knew how many times when his wife caught him. Now, he had gone and done it. Chapter 37 Chapter 37 Chapter 37 "Mr.York, I''ll do it." Serenity gestured for Zachary to move aside. Holding his tongue, Zachary gave way and handed the apron over to Serenity. However, he did not leave the kitchen. Standing in a corner, Zachary watched Serenity tackle the dishes and remarked, "We should have the next family event at a hotel.It''ll save us the trouble of cleaning." "Okay." Serenity had no objections to that.She only cooked up a storm to make a good impression with her in- laws since it was the first time both families came together. "What did Nana say to you?" Zachary asked suddenly. Pausing the dishwashing, Serenity turned her focus on Zachary. The couple''s eyes met as Zachary''s head was facing her too. Zachary caught a glimpse of the yfulness in her eyes when she blurted, "Nana asked if we''re sleeping in separate rooms.He said since we''re married, I should be bold and take the lead to throw myself at you, strip you naked, and bang you." Zachary was speechless. That certainly was something that woulde out of Nana¡¯s mouth. "Nana also said that she hopes to get a great-granddaughter next year.She emphasized a ¡®great- granddaughter¡¯, mentioning that we should keep trying until we get a girl.Nana said she would give me her life savings if I give her a girl." Zachary was again left speechless. His Nana''s life savings were at least a few billion dors. It appeared that Grandma May held Serenity in high esteem. "Did your Nana and Gramps ever have a daughter?" Shaking his head, Zachary replied, "Thest woman born into the York family was my great- grandfather¡¯s sister, but she was gone before her time.She died unexpectedly before the age of five.We have not seen any daughters in the family since" ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. There were a total of nine boys in Zachary''s generation. While washing the dishes, Serenity said with a smile, "No wonder Nana is so generous to leave her life savings to me.It sounds like mission impossible." Zachary read too much into her words, believing Serenity had finally shown her true colors. It appeared Serenity was after Nana''s assets. Serenity coaxed and sweet-talked Nana into nagging Zachary to marry the woman against his wishes. Puzzled by the silence, Serenity turned her head over and saw the sullen look on his face. Zachary''s eyes turned steely when he caught her looking at him. Serenity blinked. Was it something she said? "Mr.York?" Zachary pulled a long face as he turned on his heel and walked out of the kitchen without paying mind to Serenity. With Zachary gone, Serenity murmured, "That''s baffling.He posed the question but he himself gave me an attitude for answering it.As if I would throw myself at you.He''s like an ice king.I would freeze to death before I could eveny a finger on you." Serenity mistook Zachary¡¯s sudden hostility for Nana''s encouragement to get into his pants. Zachary stayed in his room for a long time. Serenity could not care less.Was she supposed to baby a big man like him? Chapter 38 Chapter 38 Chapter 38 Well, too bad the young couple was not that close. Zachary and Serenity were only sharing a living space while still carrying on with their separate lives. Even if Zachary was p*ssed at her to kingdome, Serenity could not care less so long as he did not kick her out. Serenity washed the dishes and cleaned up the kitchen before mopping the entire house. Finally, she sat on her recent purchase ¡ª the balcony swing ¡ª and enjoyed the cool night breeze in her hair. This was the life. Not to mention, the balcony was a mini garden. Looking at the flourishing greenery, Serenity was once again in awe of Zachary¡¯spetence to get the job done. The sound of steady footsteps led to the balcony. Soon, Zachary came to the balcony. The sight of Serenity swinging leisurely only added grimacing lines to Zachary¡¯s scowling face. He drew close and handed two sheets of paper to Serenity. "What''s this?" Serenity asked out of curiosity. Although Zachary buttoned his lips, he got the message out loud and clear. She would know once she took a look at the papers. Grabbing the papers, Serenity read through the content that outlined a contract. Zachary printed two copies so each of them had one. His signature and personal seal stamp were already on the documents. Teh. What was this? Making it official? Reaching the floor with her tippy toes, Serenity pushed back and let the motion of the swing take her. Serenity leaned back against the swinging chair as she read every line of the contract. The terms and conditions filled the entire page. Serenity only paid attention to the main points. She was not to hanker after his body since they were strangers and only husband and wife by name. To put it simply, they would sleep in separate rooms and would not engage in marital obligations. Should Serenity and Zachary fail to develop feelings for each other in six months, they would proceed with an amicable divorce. Zachary was willing to sign the house and national MPV to Serenity as the divorce settlement. That was just about what Serenity could expect out of the divorce. Zachary specifically stressed that Serenity could forget about getting her hands on Nana''s assets. Apart from getting the house and car after the divorce, the terms were not in Serenity''s favor. Zachary made adequate precautions to protect his wealth and chastity against Serenity. Zachary callously uttered, "Serenity, we might be married but certainly not for love. I think we should have a written agreement between us. Don¡¯t worry, everything else, unless outlined in the contract, will remain unchanged." In short, she should not fall in love with him, get into his pants, or take possession of Nana¡¯s assets. Serenity had no hard feelings at all. In fact, she understood the reason for him to cover all bases. She said, "I have no intention of taking Nana¡¯s possessions.I¡¯m able-bodied and fully capable of caring for myself.There''s no need for me to mooch off the elderly." In Serenity¡¯s mind, Nana was a retiree living off her pension of around two to three thousand bucks a month. Even if Nana received an allowance from her family, there was only so much she could save. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Nana probably did not have as much as Serenity. It never crossed Serenity¡¯s mind to take what was never hers. The whirlwind marriage to Zachary was to end the fights between Liberty and Hank. It was also to give Liberty peace of mind that Serenity was in safe hands. Prior to getting the marriage license, Serenity had asked Zachary if he wanted to go halves. Splitting the expenses could really drive the rift between couples who married for love like Liberty and Hank. In Serenity and Zachary¡¯s case, the divided responsibilities would work best. Serenity ran her eyes on Zachary from head to toe before paying him apliment. "Mr.York, you must be favored by God because He gave you a nice face and hot body. Some people might revere the unapproachable vibes you give while others would be tempted to conquer your heart." Zachary¡¯s eyes were overshadowed by a bleak grimness. Serenity suddenly sang to a different tune as she added in glee. "But not everybody would adore you.Don¡¯t worry, I won''t fall in love with you, nor do I want to get into your pants, Mr.York.I have nothing to add to your drafted agreement.Give me a pen to sign.Since I don''t have a rubber stamp, I''ll leave my fingerprint as a seal of agreement." Having anticipated a full-blown tantrum from her when he drafted the contract, Zachary was taken aback that she was not offended. As a matter of fact, Serenity evenplimented him for having made a good calling doing so. After a brief silence, Zachary presented Serenity with a pen. Chapter 39 Chapter 39 Chapter 39 Taking the pen, Serenity got up from the swing and walked to the balcony railing to sign her name on the contract against the hard concrete. Zachary took out an ink pad for her to seal the agreement with a thumbprint. The couple kept one copy of the contract each. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Serenity folded the contract nonchntly and stuffed it in her pocket. Zachary was irked by her incuriosity, but who was he to judge? He wrote the contract after all. Even though the demands outlined were detrimental and worked to her disadvantage, Serenity did not try to add a use to get more than what was already stated. "You had a tiring day.Get some rest" "You too." Serenity said with a smile. "I''m going to sit here for a bit and enjoy the flowers.It has always been my dream to have a balcony filled with nts.Now that my dream hase true, I just can¡¯t get enough of the view." She did not seem to hold the contract against him at all. Did she marry him without a hidden agenda? Was he just being paranoid? How else could he exin her unruffled, unfazed, and even happy behavior? Zachary quietly stared at her for a while before leaving her to be. He grabbed his car keys and went out the door. Serenity''s mellow voice was heard from the balcony. "Are you going out, Mr.York?" "Yeah.Don''t stay up and wait for me.Just leave the door unlocked for me." Serenity grinned. "I have never stayed up and waited for you." Zachary was stumped.Her reply was a p in his face. Flustered, Zachary made a quick exit.He went to the Lewis¡¯ residence to have a drink with Duncan. Serenity really got him ina foul mood. Serenity should be the one to feel humiliated and upset. Yet, she did not care. Zachary, on the other hand, had been up the wall, probably because he felt brushed off for the first time. That was right. Serenity''s offhanded response toward the strict terms of the contract was a mirror of her attitude toward him. He was a dreamboat, but Serenity had no intentions to fall in love with him. He had an awesome body, but the thoughts of jumping him and getting into his pants never crossed Serenity¡¯s mind. Huh? What was he whining about? Zachary should be happy that she knew her ce. At least, she was not shameless to be all over him. Despite all that talk to convince himself, Zachary had a bit too much to drink at Duncan''s ce. Duncan was of no help as he only brought out all the good liquor. In the end, Zachary was three sheets to the wind. Zachary must have drunk a lot because he was someone who could hold his liquor. That was some good wine. Duncan had it worse though as he copsed to the ground unconscious while Zachary was still able to walk. Zachary was picked up by his bodyguards. While on the road, one bodyguard asked his drunk but wide-awake employer, "Where to, Sir?" "T-To Brynfield." He should not stay out since the couple only met the parents today. That was the least he could do to show some respect to his wife. The bodyguards dropped Zachary off at Brynfrield. Although Zachary was still capable of walking, one of the bodyguards was ufortable leaving him alone and helped Zachary up the stairs. "Sir, should I wake the missus up?" The bodyguard only asked since the missus should be in bed at thiste hour. Feeling around for his house keys, Zachary cried, "No need." Chapter 40 Chapter 40 Chapter 40 Zachary and Serenity were merely a married couple on paper anyway, Even if the alcohol was getting to Zachary¡¯s head, he did not need Serenity to tend to him. God knew if she would take advantage of him while he was intoxicated. At the age of thirty, Zachary had not lost his first kiss to anyone. Much less, had the sanctity of his modesty vited. Romance had never been in the cards for Zachary. Nana often called him a loveless and passionless man, but because of hisckluster expectation toward love, Zachary married Serenity to get Nana off his back. Despite searching all his pockets, Zachary could not find his house keys. He said, "...Jim, maybe you should wake the missus." It appeared that he had left home without his keys. The bodyguard immediately pounded on the door. Although Serenity was asleep, she was a light sleeper, and the pounding woke her up. She pricked up her ears and realized someone was at the door. As she got up to see who it was, it dawned on her that she was in her pajamas. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Serenity pulled out a winter jacket from the wardrobe to put on before proceeding to open the door. With the door swung open, Zachary and Jim were stunned to see Serenity in a thick winter jacket. It was October right now. Sure, the mornings and nights were breezy, but it was still sweltering during the day. It did not seem like the right asion to put on a winter jacket. "Hello, I''m the designated driver from a chauffeuring service.Your husband is drunk, so I walked him up." It was a good thing Jim was quick to think on his feet ande up with a lie. He handed Zachary along with the car keys to Serenity. Serenity thought she was knocked over by a mule. Zachary was heavy! "Thank you, Mister." Serenity said to Jim. "No problem." Jim stole a nce at Mr.Zachary before slipping away. After closing and locking the door, Serenity steadied Zachary''s staggering footsteps as they walked into the house. She nagged at him, "Why did you drink so much? You stink of alcohol." Zachary remained quiet but whined inwardly instead, ¡®Whose fault was it anyway? You! Tossing the car keys on the coffee table, Serenity helped Zachary up to his bedroom door before letting go. She uttered, "It¡¯s written in the contract that your bedroom is off-limits.This is as far as I can go.You''re on your own.Wait until tomorrow to take a shower.I fear you might drown in the bathroom in this state." Zachary opened the door to his room and stumbled in. He stopped after a few steps and slowly turned around to ask, "..Why are you wearing such a thick jacket on a hot day?" He thought the alcohol was making him imagine things. "I didn''t have time to get dressed, so I put on a jacket to open the door for you." Serenity exined and shut the door for him. Following a bang, the door cut the husband and wife off from furthermunication. Having returned to her room, Serenity eagerly took off the jacket and murmured, "The heat¡¯ killing me." Once she was gone, Zachary stayed put in the silence for a while before tottering his way to his bed and dove headfirst into the soft sheets. He needed to get back to thefort of his bedroom to rest his head. Drowsiness quickly swept him away. It was in the afternoon by the time he woke up the next day. Since Zachary slept the whole night without turning on the air conditioner, he awoke to a stench of alcohol and sweat. Due to his bordering neat-freak tendency, he rushed to the toilet to throw up. He immediately took a bath. Zachary came out of the bathroom, feeling refreshed. He was himself again. With his mind harking back to his drunken night, Zachary vowed to never get himself intoxicated again. Fortunately, he had signed an agreement with Serenity before going out. Serenity kept to her word and did not prey on him while he was vulnerable. Now, Zachary wondered if he was in the right to draft the contract. Nevertheless, they might just have to roll with it since both parties already agreed to it. Having retrieved his peace of mind, Zachary realized that he was hungry. He walked out of his room, expecting a piping hot breakfast spread to be ready on the table. To his dismay, Serenity left a note on the dining table, telling him that she went to work and that he should deal with his own meals. Zachary crunched the note in his hand. ".." Chapter 41 Chapter 41 Chapter 41 It was not busy at the shop during weekends. In fact, the shop could be closed due to theck of business. Yet, Serenity went to the shop anyway. The slow day made it the perfect time to make crafts to sell online. Jasmine was here too. Seeing that Serenity was in the shop, Jasmine asked in surprise, "Seren, what brings you here on a Sunday? You''re usually at the park with your nephew." "It''s about time to replenish new stock for my online business." While knitting, Serenity lifted her chin and looked at her best friend. She asked with a smile, "What about you?" "Ugh.I couldn''t stand my mom''s nagging, so I came to hide out here" "What is it this time?" N?velDrama.Org owns this text. "She''s not happy that I didn¡¯t find myself a husband at the dinner party that night.Does she think it''s that easy? She really thinks her daughter is a catch, that I¡¯m Ms.Universe or something." Serenity burst outughing. Jasmine just described most parents in the world. Parents fret over their children¡¯s happy-ever-after when their children reached the age of having a family of their own. It was considered old to get married at twenty-five back then but not anymore. "My mom asked my aunt to introduce men to me.I''m supposed to go on a blind date tonight at some coffee house.A date at a coffee house at night? I guess the date willst until morning light if coffee is involved. "How about youe with me to the blind date, Seren?" Serenity shook her head. "No, thanks." "Oh, Seren.Please say yes.You''re my girlfriend, my best friend! You always look out for me.You''d do anything for your best friend, right?" "I don''t always look out for you.You can find someone else to do anything for you." Jasmine coaxed her. "I''ll buy you supper after the date." "I have money.I can buy my own supper.Thank you very much" Serenity did not want to join her best friend on her blind date. What if Jasmine¡¯s blind date fancied Serenity instead? Stories like this were not unheard of. A woman went on a blind date, apanied by her sister-inw. In the end, the woman was furious as the date was attracted to the sister-inw instead. The incident practically turned the woman''s rtionship with her sister-inw. Serenity and Jasmine were best friends who talked just about everything, but there were certain boundaries that could not be crossed. lt was a different story when she went with Jasmine to a dinner party. There were sessful professionals with high standards for their other halves at the event. Serenity could be herself, knowing she would not be good enough for these social elites. "Seren." At the sound of a familiar voice, the pair turned their heads toward the shop entrance. Putting aside her knitting, Serenity got up and approached the person with a smile, "Why are you here, Nana?" "I want to have a chat with you.I went to your house, but Zack said you weren''t home, so! came here instead." Grandma May looked at Serenity lovingly as she entered the shop and remarked, "You told me before that you don''t have to open for business on weekends." "It''s been a while since I restock items for my online business.I thought of making time out of the weekend to replenish them since I¡¯m running low on inventory." With her little knit knacks selling well online, Serenity had to keep up with the inventory. Some customers would pre-order, and she would promise to deliver on time. Honoringmitments was important when it came to doing business. "Seren, you''re really good with your hands." Chapter 42 Chapter 42 Chapter 42 Grandma May was a recipient of Serenity¡¯s copper wire handicrafts as well.She disyed the life-like masterpieces in in sight all over the house. Although the crafts were not worth much, they were her granddaughter-inw¡¯s gift from the heart. Visiting guests who had seen these craftworks were impressed by Serenity''s craftsmanship. That was when Grandma May came in with a sales pitch, bringing these people to Serenity¡¯s online store to up her business sales. "Have some water, Grandma May." Jasmine poured Grandma May a ss of water. "Thank you, Jas.You''re here too." "Sigh.My mom''s pressuring me to get married, so I came to the shop to enjoy same peace and quiet.She keeps setting me up with guys like I''m some unsble product.I''m supposed to go on a blind date at XX Coffee House tonight, and I''m begging Seren toe with me." With a glint flickering in her eyes, Grandma May uttered with a friendly smile, "I can understand where your mom''sing from.Marriage doesn''t seem a likely choice for my other grandsons.There''s no talking sense into them.I can¡¯t even get them on a date. "Seren, why don''t you go with Jasmine tonight?" Serenity was speechless.It was unbelievable that Nana was persuading her to join Jasmine on her date. "You and Jas are best friends.You can keep Jaspany and see if the man''s a good fit for her.You''ve been through it before." Jasmine bobbed her head incessantly. Grandma May was the best ally she could ever ask for. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. "Go with me, Seren.Well, you don¡¯t have to go along if you can convince my mom to never set me up for blind dates." Jasmine tried to appeal to Serenity¡¯s emotions. With Grandma May taking Jasmine¡¯ side, Serenity had no choice but to give up for the sake of peace. "Just this once and that''s it." "Yay! You''re the best." Now that she had gotten a yes from Serenity, Jasmine said thoughtfully, "Grandma May, I''ll leave you and Seren to chat, I need to shop for some stuff." Serenity and Grandma May could have some nana-granddaughter-inw time. Once Jasmine was gone, Nana fished out a piece of paper and handed it to Serenity. "What''s this, Nana? Did you write me a love letter?" Grandma May remarked with a smile, "Cheeky.These are some of Zack''s habits and hobbies.Have a look.The list should help you to get along with each other.Seren, although you and Zack entered the marriage without love, these feelings can be nurtured.Tear down your walls of defense and get to know each other.I''m sure you''ll soon find a mutual attraction." Serenity unfolded the piece of paper for a look while thinking back on the contract Zachary made her sign. Since they were going to divorce six monthster, Serenity did not want to waste time bonding with Zachary.She had been nothing but open to Zachary. It was thetter who kept his guard up against her albeit he had been nice to her. "Zack is a grump when he gets up and a little obsessive with cleanliness.Otherwise, he''s a pretty good guy." Since Nana fixed the couple together, it was her hope that Serenity and Zachary would fall for each other and grow old together.Serenity was dumbstruck. "He''s a grump in the morning?" "Yeah.Unless his body clock wakes him up, he''ll rain hell on anyone who disturbs him in his sleep.Even I wouldn''t dare wake him up." Reminded by the times she called Zachary in the morning and dug him out of bed, Serenity did not recall him ever being angry. Was Nana speaking the truth? Perhaps Zachary kept his temper together since they were newlyweds. "Seren, did you..st night..." With Nana blinking, Serenity got the hint. Blushing in the face, she replied, "I''m a girl, Nana.You can¡¯t expect me to jump a man." And it was not some man but Zachary, no less. Chapter 43 Chapter 43 Chapter 43 Grandma May said with a smile, "Why can''t you? You''re legally married.Zack isn''t stepping up to the te.It''s up to you to do so and give me a great-grandchild" Rosiness crept onto Serenity¡¯s cheeks. "Nana, I''ll be blunt.I just can¡¯t when I stare at your grandson''s straight face." Nana was speechless. Like his grandfather, Zachary was a no-nonsense and detached man by nature.It took Grandma May years before winning over the heart of Zachary''s grandfather when she firstid eyes on him. "Even if I want to, he''ll freeze me to death before I can get close to him.He gives me the chills." Nana was at a loss for words. "Don''t worry about Zachary and me, Nana.Things will happen naturally." Serenity saw their living arrangements as roommates. As if that could ever stop Grandma May from worrying. Since Serenity was Grandma May''s choice for a granddaughter-inw, Grandma May even went so far as to make the union possible against her son''s and daughter-inw''s wishes. Grandma May would beat herself up if Serenity was unhappy with the marriage. "Alright then.I''ll leave you two be, I suppose.Do your thing while I tidy up the ce for you." Grandma May was not one to sit and do nothing at home as she often managed nts with the gardeners. She used to help out with the fields by the estate but stopped under her children¡¯s relentless advice against it. Grandma May even thought of applying to be a cleaner at the family-ownedpany, but Zachary shot down the suggestion with one threatening look. It scared the idea out of Grandma May. It was not the first time Grandma May came to the shop to chat with Serenity. Serenity knew it was hard for Grandma May to pass time idly afterboring all her life. It did not take a lot of effort to clean up anyway, so Serenity let Grandma May be while she focused on her crafts. While dusting the books on the shelves, Grandma suddenly found Serenity to be the most charming when thetter was lost in her work. Pulling out her phone, Grandma May hid behind the shelf and captured a video of Serenity. She then sent the video to her darling grandson. Of course, Zachary was not going to reply to his nana. tt did not matter to Grandma May whether Zachary would reply so long as he saw the video. Serenity was an open book, full of surprises at every turn of the page. Now, Grandma May needed to reel her grandson in to start reading the book. It was easy to lose track of time when one is focused on one thing. By the time Serenity fulfilled the preorders, it was past six o''clock in the evening. Jasmine''¡¯s date was at half-past seven. The venue was Beans and Cream, Wiltspoon''s biggest and chicest coffee house in the heart of the city where the owner splurged on getting the ce soundproofed. It was an experience to step out of the city¡¯s hubbub and into an elegant setting, and a ce to rx without the interruption of life. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Business was good at Beans and Cream as it was a popr spot for many. Even non-coffee drinkers went there to get away from it all. Jasmine came to pick her best friend up on a bike. Seeing that Jasmine was on a motorbike, Grandma May asked, "Jas, why don''t you just walk there?" Removing her helmet, Jasmine replied with a grin, "I love the thrill of riding with the wind. The traffic is horrible at this hour, but it won''t affect me. "Have you eaten, Grandma May? Maybe I should bring you along.You''ve been there, done that.Why don''t you check out the guy for me? My aunt said he works at Stone Group." Stone Group was the second biggest corporation in Wiltspoon right after the wealthy York Corporation. Bothpanies were on a higher threshold when it came to hiring talent. In other words, working at thesepanies was something to brag about. Grandma May answered with a smile, "Serenity and I had takeout.Callum ising to pick me up, so I''ll pass on crashing your date.I mean, even at my age, I still got it.What if your date falls for me?" Chapter 44 Chapter 44 Chapter 44 Jasmine chuckled in amusement, loving Grandma May''s funny quips. Jasmine had never met Zachary in person but got to know his aloof nature from her best friend.It was a wonder that he was rted to Grandma May. Soon, Callum arrived.He was here to bring his gallivanting grandmother home. Nana reminded him to drive a cheaper vehicle. The cheapest car in the house was a BMW used by the housekeeper to get groceries. However, it was worth over a million bucks. Since it was toote to buy one, Callum had to borrow the gardener''s pickup truck. "Serenity, I''m here to take Nana home." Callum came into the shop and said hello to Serenity. "Drive safe.Nana, please give me a message when you get home," Serenity urged and gave them the crafts she made today.She gave Calluma copper-wire miniature tree. Callum was d to ept the gift as he had grown to admire Serenity¡¯s work after seeing them around the house. He believed Serenity''s handicrafts might not be worth a lot, but they were pleasing to the eye. Grandma May and Callum did not stay for long. Once they were far away, Grandma May asked Callum, "Where did you get this car?" "It''s Tom''s truck to transport fertilizers and pots.I borrowed the car from him.We don''t want Serenity to be suspicious now, do we?" Since Zachary hid his wealth from Serenity, the whole family had to y along too. Nevertheless, it was fun. Callum looked forward to the day Zachary fell head over heels for Serenity. It would be intriguing to find out Serenity¡¯s response when she realized Zachary had been lying to her. Fine. Secretly, Callum could not wait to watch Zachary worm his way out of this mess! "No wonder I thought the car was familiar.So, it belongs to Tom." Pulling out her phone, Grandma May gave Zachary a call. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. The olddy immediately put forth an order the moment Zachary picked up. "Zack, I¡¯m craving Beans and Creams desserts.Can you get them for me? I love their desserts." Furrowing his brows, Zachary replied, "You can ask anyone else in the house to run the errand." Why did he have to make the trip? "What? Can''t I ask you? I''m going to apply to be a cleaner at the office tomorrow if I don''t see Beans and Cream¡¯s desserts on the tableter." Zachary was speechless. Nana had been acting out since the passing of Gramps, often dressing down as she got out and about. Well, Nana even got him a wife. "Fine, I''ll go!" Zachary hissed through gritted teeth. Satisfied, Grandma May hung up the call. Callum got a word in. "Nana, we could get the desserts on our way back if you want.Zachary doesn¡¯t have to do it." Chapter 45 Chapter 45 Chapter 45 "What do you know?" Grandma May had her reasons.It then hit Callum.He asked with a smile, "Nana, are you putting one over Zachary?" Giving him a side nce, Grandma York murmured, "One more question, and you''re next." That shut Callum up. Although Callum felt sorry for Zachary, it was best he stayed out of it for his own safety. Better Zachary than him. Grandma May was a child trapped in an adult''s body. Having found her inner child, Grandma May was on the prowl for setting her grandchildren up. Meanwhile, Serenity closed the shop and took the helmet from her best friend to put on.She also took the keys and said, "I''ll do it." Sitting at the back, Jasmine wrapped her arms around Serenity''s waist. "If only you''re a man, Serenity.I''ll marry you right now, and that would get my mom off my back." "Hold still! Keep your hands to yourself or I''ll throw you off the bike." Serenity warned her best friend before starting the engine. Although Serenity often passed by Beans and Cream, she had never stopped for a coffee as coffee was not her thing.She preferred rose or chamomile tea. At Beans and Cream, the guy was already waiting. Perhaps to make an impression, the guy was dressed to the nines in a suit with a ted-and-white-striped tie. Holding a bouquet of roses, he waited at the entrance. Jasmine approached him with Serenity in tow. "Are you Mr.Bill?" Mr.Bill sized Jasmine and Serenity up, unsure who his date was tonight.He was given a photograph of his date. Mr.Bill did take a quick look and knew that the girl was pretty, but he could not really remember her face. He was told to wait by the door with roses, so Ms.Sox could recognize him. "Are you Ms.Sox?" "Yes,m." Mr.Bill ushered the girls in with a smile. He had booked a table by the window for a nice view of the city. After taking a seat, Mr.Bill stole a few nces at Serenity. Jasmine mentioned Serenity was married during a quick introduction. It was a shame as Mr.Bill was drawn to Serenity¡¯s graceful charms. For a minute, he thought Serenity was his date. It turned out Serenity was already taken. Jasmine only showed up because, for one, she could not take her moms Nagging anymore, and two, her aunt set up the date. Jasmine should at least be appreciative of her aunt''s efforts. There were no sparks between Jasmine and Mr.Bill. Jasmine was turned off by Mr.Bill as their conversation went on. Working at Stone Group as a manager, Mr.Bill considered himself a sessful business elite. Although he was aware that the Soxes were wealthy, he believed they were only sessful due to the property market boom. In fact, Mr.Bill looked down on Jasmine. Mr.Bill flexed his superiority and even talked about going halves after marriage. Following that point in the conversation, Serenity kicked her best friend under the table to give Jasmine her thumbs-down. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. "I need to go to the washroom, Mr.Bill." Cutting Mr.Bill off from his big talk, Jasmine excused herself and got up to leave. She gave her aunt a call in the loo to moan about the horrible date before calling her mom as well. Jasmine told her mom that she would venture into nunhood if she had to go on another blind date with Tom, Dick, or Harry. Mr.Bill acted all that just because he worked at Stone Group. It was not like he was the CEO. For all she knew, the CEO was probably not as arrogant either. Serenity was not a fan of Mr.Bill''s character either. While her best friend was in the loo, she looked out the window and refused to engage ina conversation with Mr.Bill. It was when Zachary came into the coffee house. He had the habit of scanning a ce wherever he went. It never urred to him that he would catch his wife having coffee with another man. Was she cheating on him? Was she in a hurry to find someone better because she could not get much out of him due to the contract? Perhaps Serenity was not going to sit around and wait to be divorced. Zachary was about to approach her when Jasmine returned from the loo. Jasmine said something to the man before pulling his wife away to leave. Chapter 46 Chapter 46 Chapter 46 "Ms.Sox, don¡¯t leave so soon." Not done flexing his superiority, Mr.Bill was reluctant to let Jasmine go. "I''m sorry, Mr.Bill.I don¡¯t think we''re a good match.See you never." Jasmine came clean about her thoughts before dragging Serenity away. They strutted on until Serenity came to a sudden stop. "What''s wrong, Seren?" "My husband." "What?" Before Jasmine understood the meaning behind Serenity¡¯s words, Zachary had drawn close.His profound eyes were fixated on Serenity as his lips curled into a smirk. Serenity could feel his sarcasm without him saying a word. What was he being sarcastic about? Serenity got her answer when she turned around and caught sight of Mr.Bill on their tail. Serenity exined, "I¡¯m only tagging along my friend, Jasmine¡¯, date." She was not in a rush to find the next sugar daddy. Zachary remained without a word. Jasmine got a look at her best friend''s husband atst! The man was a dreamboat! Afraid Zachary might take it the wrong way, Jasmine tried to clear the air too. Zachary uttered coldly, "Don''te homete." Serenity asked, "Alright.Why are you here?" "Nana told me to get desserts.She loves the desserts here." It dawned on Zachary that Nana was up to no good. Nana told him to get the desserts here, knowing fully that Serenity would be at the same ce. Did Nana think he would be jealous to catch Serenity here with another man? "oh? The couple basked in silence after that. In the end, Serenity broke the silence and said, "Well, I got to go.Come home after you deliver the desserts to Nana.I''ll leave the door unlocked for you." Zachary answered in a t tone, "Sure." The married couple then went their separate ways. Serenity took off on her best friend''s bike while Zachary got the desserts and drove his national MPV away from Beans and Cream. Zachary drove all the way to the Yorks¡¯ estate. Grandma May was still up and watching TV in the living room. With the desserts in hand, Zachary took strides over and ced the food on the coffee table. Straightening his back, he callously said, "Nana, we agreed that you won''t interfere with my married life." This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. "But I didn¡¯t." The olddy yed innocent. Zachary pointed at the desserts. "You made a specific instruction for me to get the desserts from Beans and Cream so I''d see Serenity having coffee with another man.Nana, I don¡¯t know what jealousy is nor will I ever experience it" Turning on his heel, Zachary walked out. Grandma May called him back, "It''ste.Aren''t you going to stay the night?" "My wife left the door unlocked for me," Zachary replied indifferently. The olddy watched him walk away before muttering under her breath, "No idea what jealousy is? Not going to experience it? Well, I won''t bet on it" Chapter 47 Chapter 47 Chapter 47 Serenity had no idea about the interaction between Zachary and Grandma May. It was a surprise running into Zachary at Beans and Cream, but putting two and two together, Serenity figured out why Zachary ended up there. What was the reason behind Nana''s actions? Was it so Zachary would get the wrong idea about her? It was not as if Serenity was on a blind date. It was Jasmine¡¯s date. Even if Zachary saw her... Harking back to the scene at the coffee house, Serenity noticed the tension in Zachary''s face more than ever. Although Serenity tended to be slow at picking up cues, she could tell that Zachary took things the wrong way. Most importantly, Jasmine was at the loo, leaving Serenity with Mr.Bill by herself. It was a good thing Jasmine emerged from the loo right after.Her timely rification loosened the tension on his clenched jaw. Serenity was clueless as to why Nana would do such a thing.She saved Nana¡¯s life, but she expected nothing in return. It was Nana who remained forever grateful and tried to give Serenity the world. By right, Nana would not do anything to hurt her. Bearing more questions than answers, Serenity returned home and sat on the balcony swing. Without turning on the lights, she quietly observed the night sky. Zachary only got home at midnight. Serenity was asleep on the swing by the time he reached home. Oblivious to that, Zachary assumed Serenity was in bed since her bedroom door was closed and the house was in darkness. Taking a seat on the sofa, Zachary turned on the TV. He rarely watched TV but could use some background noise.He adjusted the volume to the lowest.He did not want to wake Serenity from her sleep. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Ring, ring, ring... With his phone ringing, Zachary looked at the iing call. It was Callum. "Callum." "Are you alright, Zack?" Callurn¡¯s concerned voice came through from the other end. After a pause, Zachary asked him, "You knew Nana set me up?" "Bro! How did Nana set you up? All I knew was Nana telling you to get desserts from Beans and Cream.Nana¡¯s love for their cakes isn¡¯t something new." Zachary scoffed. "My wife just so happened to be on a date at Beans and Cream: "What!" Callum cried in aghast, "Your wife went on a date? Is she cheating on you? You were only married not too long ago, and our families met yesterday.We even talked about your future wedding during dinner, and now you''re telling me your wife went on a date?" "She was there to keep her best friendpany on a date." After a pause, Callum replied, "Zack, you could¡¯ve given it to me straight before I judged Serenity.I knew it.Serenity didn''t look like the kind to mess around." "By coincidence, her best friend was in the washroom when I arrived.So, I saw Serenity sitting together with her best friend''s date." "Talk about coincidence.Even if Nana summoned you there, it wasn''t like she could predict when you''d be there to catch Serenity alone with another man."Zachary fell silent and uttered annoyedly, "Nana bought Beans and Cream Not too long ago.She''s the real owner." As the head of the household, Zachary had an idea of Nana''s activities. "Zack, are you saying that the employees are keeping an eye on Serenity? You happened to arrive when Serenity¡¯s best friend was in the loo, so you''d get the impression that Serenity was onto the next guy." Quick to catch on, Callum did not take long to get the whale thing straight. He responded amid chuckles, "I guess Nana is only anxious for the rtionship to work since you and Serenity are married.She''s trying to get under your skin, so you''d feel jealous.Were you jealous, Zack?" "I don''t know what jealousy is!" Callurn burst outughing. "Well, maybe Serenity could teach you that new vocabry.Nana is really fond of Serenity.Zack, I think you''ll fall in love with her sooner orter.She might not be able to change her upbringing, but Serenity''s brilliant in every single way.Her copper-wire handcraft is amazing and beautiful." He got a miniature tree from Serenity. Although it was not worth much, Callum absolutely loved it.He decided to take the miniature tree to his office tomorrow as Callum had a nice spot for it on his desk. Chapter 48 Chapter 48 Chapter 48 The video sent by Nana suddenly came to Zachary¡¯s mind. Serenity was breathtaking when she was focused on making her crafts. Still denying that fact, Zachary watched the video multiple times nheless.He was captivated by the charm exuded by a confident woman at work. It was eye-catching.It was said that women with confidence were the prettiest. All he saw was confidence in Serenity.She was a strong and independent woman. "I''ve never known and will never know what jealousy is...Oh, you''re up?" Zachary was caught off guard by Serenity¡¯s sudden presence in the living room as she emerged from the balcony. While still on the line, Callum replied, "I¡¯m going to bed soon, but I thought of giving you a call before I turn in for the night."Zachary terminated the call. Callum, *.." "I dozed off on the swing.Your talking woke me up." Wincing his face, Zachary told her off, "The night breeze can be freezing.Careful not to catch a cold" "Thank you for your concern." Serenity yawned. "I''m off to bed now, Mr.York." N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Nothing much was mentioned about tonight. Zachary watched her retreat to her room without a word.He was unsure if she overheard his conversation with Callum, and if so, how much of it? Sigh. Now that there was a wife upying his space, Zachary felt like he had no privacy anymore. Well, he found out during the next day''s breakfast of how much Serenity had heard because there was a dictionary on the table with a page earmarked on the letter J. Breakfast was avocado and toast. The couple enjoyed generous servings of avocados and toasts. They had sd on the side too. Serenity took out a bottle of dressing from the fridge and added to her toast and sd. She pushed the bottle toward Zachary. "Do you want some? It''ll add vor to your food." "No, thanks." Zachary turned down the offer. Serenity put the lid back on and put the bottle of dressing aside.She then grabbed a sheet of paper to read. "I love a good read during breakfast." Zachary kept quiet. "I got the ¡®Word of the Day¡¯ printed out.Have a look.It¡¯s interesting." Before Zachary had a chance to say anything, Serenity shoved the paper in his face.She said, "Have a look." Zachary stared at her and shifted his gaze onto the paper.Lo and behold, the word of the day was ¡ª jealousy. "What do you think?" "Interesting." Zachary blurted. "Now that you¡¯ve seen the word, don''t go around and say you have no clue of its definition.People would think that you¡¯re mentally challenged." Zachary, ".." Chapter 49 Chapter 49 Chapter 49 Serenity finished her breakfast and cleaned up in the kitchen before telling Zachary, "I''m going out.Don¡¯t forget to lock the door on your way out." Zachary nced at her before turning his attention back to his toast. "That reminds me.Can I take some of the fruits to my sister''s?" She bought too much fruit the other day for the family event and they would be left to rot in the fridge since she and Zachary could not finish everything in time. Zachary answered, "Your sister is family.You can take whatever you want without asking me.You''re free to make decisions over household affairs unless it''s a matter that requires a discussion between us." "We''re not that close, and I¡¯m living in your house.I think it¡¯s respectful to you as a husband to ask. "I''m not the type to hog all the good stuff for my own family.I bought a little too much fruit the other day and I think they''ll go to waste since we can''t eat that much.At least now my sister can have some before they turn bad." "Sure," Zachary responded. Seeing that Zachary had no issue with that, Serenity packed two bags of fruit and brought them to her sister. Liberty said to Serenity, "You don¡¯t have to bring gifts when you visit.I have money to get things." ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "It''s only Zachary and me at home.I might eat some, but Zachary doesn¡¯t like fruit.It''s a waste to leave it to rot.He told me to give them to you.He said you''re family" Serenity had never seen Zachary munching on fruit. Zachary often workedte and holed up in his room when he was back.She only saw him in the mornings. It did not appear that Zachary had grabbed any snacks from the house. Serenity suspected that Zachary would eat out like before if she did not make him breakfast.He probably had never drank from the tap at home. At that point, Liberty epted the bags of fruit. Serenity yed with her nephew for a while before heading to the shop. With Serenity gone, Zachary threw the toast and the paper with the Word of the Day into the trash. The toast was delicious at first, but the wheat contained too much carbs for his liking. He said it before, and he would say it again! He would never know the meaning of jealousy! Zachary took out the trash with him in case Serenity saw the paper and breakfast in the bin. The bodyguards were waiting for him downstairs. Since Serenity had already left the building, they did not have to worry about the missus seeing them here. With Mr.Zacharying downstairs with a trash bag, the bodyguards were stunned. In all the years they had been by Mr.Zachary''s side, the bodyguards saw Mr.Zachary as a speckless God. Zachary put the trash in the dumpster before walking to his car. Since the bodyguards were not keeping up with him, he turned his head around and asked, "Are you under a freezing spell? What are you standing there for?" Snapping out of their thoughts, the bodyguards kept up with his pace. A bodyguard was in charge of driving the national MPV to York Corporation every day. Zachary would then drive the vehicle back home from work. Half an hourter, a red Ferrari stood out by forcefully blocking Zachary''s convoy entering York Corporation. The owner of the sports car was ady in red. With long, wavy hair curtaining her back, the woman had an exquisite face and her neck was complemented with a diamond ne. She also wore a diamond bracelet and matching diamond earrings. She was shining bright like a diamond for sure. The girl got out of her car and approached the Rolls Royce to knock on the window. Zachary wound down his car window. "Elisa Stone! You have two minutes to move your car!" Chapter 50 Chapter 50 Chapter 50 Zachary threatened thedy coldly. The apple of the Stones¡¯ eye, Elisa was the princess of Stone Group''s chairman and the twin sister of the CEO, Clive Stone. Elisa was the most eligible bachelorette. "Hang on, Zachary." Struck by a thought, Elisa turned around and ran back to the sports car to grab a huge bouquet of roses.She returned with the bouquet and shoved it through Zachary¡¯s open window while saying, "These are for you, Zachary.I know you and my brother don''t get along, but I love you.I feel the need to confess my love to you, so you know I¡¯m your one true love." Stone Group and York Corporation might not be sworn enemies, but they were certainly business rivals due to shing trades. Both groups were not on the best of terms, to say the least. Yet, it was love at first sight for Clive¡¯s sister, Elisa, when she firstid her eyes on Zachary at an event many years ago. Due to the conflict of interest between both giants, Clive and her parents disapproved of Elisa''s new- found love. Although Elisa was pampered all her life, it did not mean she was foolish. She thought about giving up on Zachary, but the passing of years failed to wipe him out of her mind. As a matter of fact, she found it harder to resist Zachary. Elisa was really into Zachary¡¯s aloofness. He was cool in her eyes. Seeing that Zachary kept away from young women, Elisa took it as a challenge to win his heart. Since she could not get Zachary out of her head, Elisa decided to disregard her family and boldly confess her love to Zachary. From today on, she, Elisa Stone, would openly go in pursuit of Zachary! Zachary gave a ck look. Grabbing the bouquet, Zachary hurled it far and away. He then wound the window up and callously instructed the driver, "Drive!" "Zachary! Zachary! I love you! I want your heart!" Elisa shouted as she pounded on the car window. Zachary¡¯s driver started the engine and asked, "Sir, what about Ms.Stone''s car?" "Hit it!" The driver did not floor the pedal, but one of Zachary¡¯s escorting vehicles taxed ahead instead and smashed Elisa''s multimillion-dor Ferrari out of the way. Bang! The security guards on duty watched with their jaws dropped. With Elisa''s car out of the way, Zachary¡¯s Rolls Royce entered thepany¡¯s private parking lot. Elisa was dumbfounded as she stared at the damage made to her new sports car. By the time she came around and ran after Zachary, the security guards had closed the gates. "Zachary!" Elisa shouted out loud, "You have to get me a new car since you crashed mine.You owe me one.I''ll bug you every day till you get me a new car" It pained her that her car was wrecked. However, on second thought, Elisa could use this as an excuse to pester Zachary. Elisa believed the crash presented her with opportunities. Anyway, she had made her stance clear to Zachary that she was seeking his hand! No matter the oue, she would have no regrets about going through with her decision. Nevertheless, it was the coolest thing ever for one of Zachary''s escorting vehicles to race ahead and smash her Ferrari out of the way. Of course, it would have been better if it was not her car. The security guards were amazed by Ms. Stone''s courage. Not only did shee to York Corporation to kick up a fuss, but she also professed her love for Mr.York. That was definitely some nerves of steel!Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 51 Chapter 51 Chapter 51 "Don''t let the missus know about today." Zachary told the people around him.The bodyguards heeded his instruction. Mr.Zachary was married.Yet, Ms.Stone openly professed her love to him. The missus should never find out about it. Elisa¡¯s brazen stunt did not go unnoticed among those in York Corporation. The employees stole a few nces at their boss as Zachary walked into the building. Bearing a straight face with his lips pursed as always, Zachary took strides while being surrounded by his bodyguards. There was just a regal air about him. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Such a man was a heartthrob to most young women. Many young female employees in thepany would be swept off their feet after catching a glimpse of the young CEO. However, nobody had the guts toe clean about their feelings toward Zachary, let alone chase after him. The way ordinary people saw it was that the Yorks were far beyond reach. Even if the boys of the York family were known for theirmitment to their partners, the issue was bagging one of their hearts. Back in his office, Zachary pulled out his phone to call Clive. It took a while before Clive picked up the call. "My, are pigs flying? I can''t believe the great CEO, Mr.York, is calling me.To what do I owe the honor?" With a cheeky smile, Clive teased Zachary through the phone. "Clive, sort your sister out!" The mention of his sister saw Clive taking it seriously, "What did Elisa do?" He knew that his sister had a crush on Zachary for many years and could not move on from him. Lately, Elisa told Clive that she nned to profess her feelings for Zachary. With that in mind, Clive had a bad feeling about it. Did his brash sister go and rip her heart out to Zachary? Why did she have to fall in love with Zachary''s deadpan face? "She''s pestering me! She''s outside my office right now.Either youe here and take her away or I''ll get my men to throw her out." "I''ll get my wife to take her home now so we don''t trouble you, Mr.York.Go on with work, Mr.York." Zachary scoffed coldly and ended the call. Clive was left seething with rage, not toward Zachary, but his sister.He immediately called his wife and shot a question the moment the call was picked up. "Honey, where are you?" "I''m shopping with Mom.What''s wrong? You sound angry." "Go to York Corporation now to collect Elisa.The girl went to look for Zachary and harassed him.You know Zachary.He won''t stand for it." Clive was mad at his sister for loving Zachary still despite the family''s dissuasion. He was also worried that Zachary might not be nice to Elisa. Although Zachary was like a block of ice, he had a fiery temper. Anyone who got on Zachan¡¯s nerves would be thrown out regardless of ss, status, or gender. Zachary would not hesitate to disgrace the person. Zachary was the mover and shaker of Wiltspoon¡¯s business world. Since the media put his every move under a magnifying ss, Zachary would not have to do anything for the media to tear into the people on his hit list. Clive''s only concern was her sister''s reputation tarnished by Zachary. She would not be able to show her face in Wiltspoon again. His wife replied, "I''ll head there right now.Don''t be mad.All Elisa wants is to try.She''ll give up if it fails.She doesn¡¯t want to live with the regret of not even trying." Chapter 52 Chapter 52 Chapter 52 "Zachary isn¡¯t someone she can handle.Try and get her to move on.You don''t see other young women hanging around Zachary other than his family.He''s a heartless man.Why can''t Elisa listen to reason?" Clive threw in the towel on his sister. "I''m too busy to deal with her now.Honey, I''ll leave Elisa in your hands." "Carry on with your work.I''ll pick Elisa up now and take her to go shopping with Mom.Mom''s been feeling downtely." Clive''¡¯s wife, Alice, had a great rtionship with her mother-inw. Seeing that her mother-inw was feeling blue, Alice persuaded her to go out and get some sunshine. A bit of retail therapy might do her good. Clive fell silent.He knew the reason behind his mother''s mncholy. There had not been any news about his aunt. It was the one thing Mom could never stop talking about. Clive''s mother, Audrey, grew up in an orphanage. Her parents passed away when Audrey was young, survived by Audrey and her sister who was four years younger. The sisters were then sent to the orphanage. Later, a wealthy couple came to the orphanage with the interest to adopt a child. The couple took to Audrey''s younger sister. At the time, Audrey was eight years old while her sister was merely four. Although reluctant to part with her sister, Audrey knew she was in better hands with the couple. Hence, Audrey agreed to let the couple adopt her sister. The sisters took a picture as a memento before the fateful separation. It had been decades since they saw each other again. As she came of age, Audrey left the orphanage and put her wits and skills to the test, working her way up the corporatedder. She earned the boss¡¯ trust and confidence in return. Plus, she caught the eye of the boss¡¯ eldest son. Finally, she married into a wealthy family and became Mrs.Stone. Now that she had the means, Audrey never gave up on looking for her sister but heard nothing back despite her decades of effort. Not too long ago, Clive came across some news about his aunt. Audrey was overjoyed as they had located the wealthy couple who adopted the girl. Clive and his dad went along with Audrey to visit the wealthy couple and found out that the couple had their own child a year into the adoption. Since then, the couple stopped being nice to Audrey''s sister and told their maid to take Audrey''s sister away to give her to someone else as they only wanted to leave the family inheritance to their flesh and blood. Decades passed, and the maid was long gone. The maid''s family had no idea about the whole thing, much less to whom Audrey''s sister was given. The recent update of the search had been hanging over Audrey. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Now, the only way to locate Clive''s aunt was through the yellowing photograph that Mom had kept until now. Clive had put a digital copy of it on the web, hoping it might lead them to his aunt or his aunt''s children. "Honey, tell Mom that we''ll find her sister so long as she¡¯s still alive.Even if her sister isn''t around anymore, we will locate her children.Mom needs to rx.We still need her to identify her sister when she''s found." Clive loved his mother tremendously. He hoped his mother could pick herself back up again. Alice replied, "I will.Get back to your work.I''ll pick Elisa up.Clive, if Elisa won''t listen, why don¡¯t we just let her try? Zachary might be indifferent, but he''s a decent man who Elisa could give herself to." Truth be told, all the York boys could be trusted to carry out the marriage VOWS. Deep down, Alice supported Elisa. Alice believed Elisa was a good fit for Zachary and for her to take the plunge to confess to him. Both families were in the same ss. Although the families did not get along because of thepetition in business, they would still practice social formalities whenever they crossed paths. Should Elisa take down Zachary and marry into the York family, it would ease the discord between both families. Chapter 53 Chapter 53 Chapter 53 Elisa was picked up by her sister-inw in the end while the smashed car was towed away. When Alice came by, Elisa even said, "Since Zachary wrecked my car, I have an excuse to cling to him.Alice, now that I made the first move, I need to keep going.I won''t forgive myself if I don¡¯t put in the years to pursue Zachary. "Alice, you''re the best.Clive only listens to you.Please talk to him for me.I just need him off my back from my pursuit of happiness." Elisa was envious of her brother and sister-inw¡¯s love story. Alice went after Clive, and it took a year before Alice won his heart. The roles were reversed after marriage as Clive spoiled Alice crazy.It was not the first time Alice mentioned that she would not have her happy ending if she did not bravely go after the love of her life. While driving, Alice uttered, "Elisa, I¡¯m all for you pursuing your happiness, but it''s Zachary we''re talking about. Aren''t you aware of his reputation in Wiltspoon? He''s known for keeping a distance from women. Have you seen any young women around him? "Besides, our family is not on good terms with the Yorks.Your brother might not be an enemy of Zachary, but they''re rivals at the end of the day.They don''t see eye-to-eye.I¡¯m worried Zachary might use you as a weapon or a punching bag." "I don''t think he''ll do that.The Yorks half themselves in high regard.The men of the family are famous for spoiling their wives." Having witnessed the love between her brother and sister-inw, Elisa looked forward to sharing the same intimacy with her future husband. Among the upper crust of Wiltspoon, York''s men stood out for putting their wives above everything. "No matter what, your brother is only doing it for your own good.We''ll save this conversation for another day, Elisa.Mom is waiting for us at the Herm¨¦s store.Let''s get some fresh air with Mom.She''s been feeling down because of that thing with her sister." Pursing her lips, Elisa replied, "Mom and her sister have been apart for so many years.God knows how many times her sister had been through the adoption system.Her sister might have lost the photograph too.We''re looking for a needle in a haystack here." "Still, we have to try." Elisa remained without a word. That was Mom''s only wish. As her children, they had to help Mom fulfill it. Serenity was clueless about her rival in love as it had been a busy day at the shop. After closing the shop at eleven at night, she rode her e-bike home. Wiltspoon was a thriving city. Even at eleven o''clock, the streets were filled with endless human traffic. It was a bustling scene as the public lined up by food trucks, itching for midnight snacks. Serenity rode her bike past the food trucks. A group of young men saw her and catcalled her, but she turned a deaf ear, refusing to give them her time of day. She hit the brakes at a red light. By the time the traffic lights turned green, she restarted her engine and zipped past the intersection before the bike suddenly conked out. Serenity thought she was out of battery, but her battery was still on full bar. Why did it stop? The bike would not start despite Serenity¡¯s multiple attempts. That was strange. What could be the problem? "Is that you, Serenity? I thought your back looked familiar.For a moment there, I thought my eyes were deceiving me." N?velDrama.Org owns this text. With a car pulling up beside Serenity, the person inside lowered his window.It was Jasmine''s cousin, Shawn. "Shawn." Serenity answered, "I don¡¯t know what''s wrong with my bike.It suddenly stopped working, but the battery is full." "Hang on, Serenity.I''ll park the car by the side of the road to get out of the way." Shawn then drove his car to park by the curb.He got out of the car and checked on Serenity''s bike. Shawn replied apologetically, "I don''t know much about e-bikes to know what''s wrong with it, Serenity. How about I get your bike towed to a repair shop? I''ll drive you home." Serenity asked, "Do you know if there''s an electric vehicle repair shop nearby?" Chapter 54 Chapter 54 Chapter 54 Shawn said with a smile, "I don¡¯t know.I''ll get your bike fixed.I promise to return a fully functioning bike to you." Since Shawn was Jasmine''¡¯s cousin and a friend for many years, Serenity knew she could trust him. "Thank you." Happy to be of assistance to Serenity, Shawn dialed a number and made a call. Serenity heard him sharing their location. The only thing next was to wait for the tow truck. "Sir" The driver''s keen eyes picked up on the sight of a familiar woman opposite the traffic lights.It appeared to be the missus judging by the build. While waiting at the traffic lights, he turned around and said to Mr.Zachary who was resting his eyes. "Sir, the woman looks like the missus." Zachary opened his eyes and turned toward the man and woman standing by the road. He could not recognize the man, probably due to the distance, but the woman did seem like his wife. After living under the same roof for a while, Zachary grew familiar with Serenity''s silhouette. "Slow down the car when you pass by.I need to be sure if it''s her." "Alright." Zachary pulled out his phone with the intention to call Serenity but on second thought, held back that idea. Soon, the traffic lights turned green. With Zachary''s luxurious convoy taking the speed down a notch, Zachary was able to identify the woman to be his wife, Serenity. It only sprung to Zachary''s mind who the man was as the convoy was driving away. It was Shawn! His love rival! Were Serenity and Shawn together, to begin with? Or did they run into each other? Although Zachary had questions, he chose to keep quiet and not call Serenity. The convoy of luxury sedans cruised out of sight. Shawn stared at the receding convoy before turning to Serenity. "Did you see those few cars there? One of the vehicles is Mr.York''s exclusive ride." It only came to Shawn after the convoy was gone. Serenity casually inquired, "Which Mr.York?" This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. "The heir to the wealthiest York family.He''s also the CEO of York Corporation.He was at the dinner party, but you girls were too busy with the food to catch a glimpse of him." Shawn looked up to Zachary. "I don''t belong to your circle.I was only at the dinner party as Jas¡¯s plus one.I had to try the food of a seven-star establishment.I doubt I¡¯d ever cross paths with Mr.York or the wealthiest in Wiltspoon.Why should I bother to catch a glimpse of him?" People were all over Mr.York that night. Serenity could not see his face even if she wanted to. "Shawn, have you met Mr.York? Does he have eleven toes or two heads?" Shawn chuckled. "Mr.York is a normal man without eleven toes or two heads.He does have an above-average look and that presence about him.I''m ttered that he talked to me." Chapter 55 Chapter 55 Chapter 55 "Even if Mr.York''s a normal man, he won''t engage with ordinary people like me." Serenity might be nosy about the heir of the York family at the dinner party, but that was about it before she lost interest. As normal as Mr.York could be, he would not interact with regr people like her. Serenity was not the lowest ss in society, nor was she that high up on the hierarchical pyramid. The richest people she knew were Jasmine and Shawn. Shawn qualified as an heir to a wealthy family. Since Serenity and the heir of the richest family did not belong in the same world, their paths would not cross. Shawn grinned without a word. Although he never looked down on Serenity, it did not mean other privileged men would not turn their noses up at her. Shawn knew wealth and social standing stood above the rest among the upper crust. Despite Shawn''s efforts to rub shoulders with the veterans in the business at the dinner party, he was met with lukewarm responses. "The truck''s here." After the truck was parked by the road, a man exited the vehicle and said, "Sir" It was then Serenity realized that Shawn called his family''s chauffeur over. The Lowe family¡¯s personal driver borrowed a pickup truck from somewhere. Together with Shawn, the driver moved Serenity''s e-bike onto the truck. "It''ste, Serenity.I don¡¯t think any repair shops are operating at this hour.Bryan will haul your bike to a workshop tomorrow and deliver it back to you in one piece." "Thank you." Serenity thanked Shawn from the bottom of her heart. She might have to push the bike all the way home until morning light if she had not bumped into him. Shawn smiled. "What are friends for? Get on, Serenity.I''ll take you home.Are you still living at your sister''s ce?" "No.I live in Brynfield now.I¡¯m lucky you were here tonight, or I''d have to walk home while pushing the bike.I don''t know what happened.The battery was full, but still the bike stopped working." Serenity suspected a short circuit.She got into Shawn''s car. Shawn was aware of the change in Serenity¡¯s marital status. Although her husband''sst name was York, the man had nothing to do with the wealthy Yorks. She must be living with her husband now. Shawn did not impose by asking the name of Serenity¡¯s man. On the way to Brynfield, Shawn inquired, "Do you fancy supper, Serenity? I''ll treat you." Serenity replied with a smile, "I enjoy supper on rare asions only.It''ste.You have to work tomorrow.I don¡¯t want to take up more of your time." That was a no. Shawn left it at that. He knew Serenity too well. Insisting further on the matter when she had already declined would only put her off. Serenity told Shawn to stop the car when they arrived at Brynfield¡¯smunity gate. "I can walk from here." Shawn meant to walk her to her block so he could have an idea of the building she was living in. However, it was hard to ess a gatedmunity like Brynfield. s, Shawn had to give up on that thought. He could ask Jasmine for Serenity¡¯s address anyway. "Thank you for tonight, Shawn." Serenity expressed her gratitude toward Shawn once more. "It was no big deal.You''ve thanked me enough.You could buy me dinner if you really want to thank me." Serenity smiled. "Sure.I''ll take you and your cousin to dinner."N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Shawn pursed his lips and responded, "Can''t it just be the two of us?" "We can do that.I guess you don¡¯t want Jasmine to pester you during dinner." Shawn curled his lips, agreeing in silence. Waving him goodbye, Serenity tapped her card to ess the neighborhood. Shawn waited until her figure was out of sight before winding the window up and starting the car. Serenity took strides to her home and pulled out the keys to open the door. It did not take long before she realized that the door was locked from the inside. Did Zachary assume she was back and lock the door when he came home? Um... What should she do now? Chapter 56 Chapter 56 Chapter 56 Should Serenity call Zachary to wake him up? Nana mentioned that Zachary would be furious if anyone were to disrupt his sleep. Serenity looked at the time. It was past midnight. Zachary must still be awake since he usually came home around this time. Serenity took the plunge and called Zachary. Zachary was wide awake. In fact, he locked the door from the inside on purpose, albeit he had no idea of the reason behind his own actions. Anyway, it triggered Zachary to see Serenity and Shawn together, looking like a match made in heaven. The conniving woman was in a rush to look for her next sugar daddy since she could not get much out of him. She had Nanapletely fooled. At the end of the day, Nana had only known Serenity for three months. How well could Nana know Serenity? Yet, Nana, driven by gratitude, put a lot of trust in Serenity and nagged Zachary to marry her... Zachary¡¯s phone rang but he refused to pick up Serenity¡¯s call. The ringing stopped after a while but not for long as Serenity called again. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary left Serenity high and dry for three call attempts before picking up. "Are you asleep, Mr.York?" "What do you want?" Zachary seethed. "You locked the door.I can''t get in." After a brief silence, Zachary¡¯s t but sarcasm tinted voice came through. "I thought you were going to stay at a hotel tonight" The spite came out of nowhere for Serenity. Why would she stay at a hotel? What was with the suddensh out? Did she step on his toes in any way? "Can you open the door, Mr.York?" Being the bigger person, Serenity let his tone slide. Zachary remained without a word. The couple settled into an awkward tension before Serenity broke the silence. "Mr.York, I''m fine if you want me to stay at a hotel.I can always use the debit card you gave me to pay for the night at Wiltspoon Hotel." Zachary was speechless. "Hang on!" He callously uttered before hanging up. A few minutester, he got out to open the door. Zachary turned on his heel and walked away the second the door was opened. Serenity walked into the house and locked the door behind her. With Zachary making his way to his bedroom, Serenity called him back. "Wait, Mr.York." Zachary stopped in his tracks without looking back. "Mr.York, what''s with the salty and sarcastic tone tonight? Did I offend you in any way? Just tell me directly if you have a problem.Don''t bring the issues to bed and give me that sassy attitude.I can move out if you intend to lock me out every day.This is your house anyway.Your house, your tules." Serenity was annoyed too. Zachary turned around.His dark eyes bore into hers with the chills of a dark and stormy night. Serenity reckoned she would be frozen solid by the time he was done with her. "How did youe home tonight?" "What?" Serenity was confused by the question. "Who took you home?" Serenity was dumbstruck. How did he know Shawn drove her back when she got off at themunity gate? Did he have telescopic vision? Perhaps Zachary caught her getting out of Shawn''s car just as he got back home. Regardless, Serenity did not notice Zachary at all. Chapter 57 Chapter 57 Chapter 57 "Serenity, we have an agreement.We''ll divorce after six months, so can''t you wait until then before moving on to the next guy? I don¡¯t know why you''re on the prowl when we''re still legally married.You''re basically cheating on me right now. "I might not have any feelings for you, nor will I ever, but no man will stand by being cheated on." He was only acting weird because he was angry. Zachary was furious that Serenity was so quick to have an affair. Shawn had a crush on Serenity.He had his eye on Zachary¡¯s woman. This had nothing to do with the matters of the heart, but everything to do with a mans pride and dignity. Serenity looked around as if searching for something. Unable to find anything handy, she grabbed her purse, filled with her phone and keys, and hurled it at Zachary. Since Serenity had learned self-defense, she got a pretty aim. Caught off guard by the attack, Zachary was smacked right in the face. The keys and phone in her purse turned into weapons and did a painful number on his lips. He shot an angry look at Serenity. No one had ever disrespected him like this! Serenity walked over and bent to pick up her purse. Her tone matched his. "You asked for it. "You convicted me of some mumbo jumbo you conjured in your head without so much as seeking rification.Have you always been this bossy and self-righteous?" Zachary felt his aching lips while ring at her. "What are you looking at? Is this a stare-down? As if Id lose to you." Serenity raised her purse peevishly. Zachary thought to himself, ¡®Not again! How did she find the cheek to strike him? T-This was domestic violence! "My ride broke down in the middle of the road, but I was lucky to run into Shawn.He''s my best friend¡¯s cousin.I¡¯ve known him longer than I have you.I guess you could say we grew up together. "Anyway, he wasn''t going to drive past when he saw me stranded.He called a tow truck for me to send my bike to the workshop before driving me home.We''ve done nothing wrong, but you made it sound like we were having an affair. "Talk about the pot calling the kettle ck.Perhaps you''re the one cheating on me" Zachary was speechless. For once, Zachary was lost for words. "Mr.York, you could''ve told me if you didn¡¯t want to get married back then.I didn''t make you sign the papers.Why do you look like I''m preying on you? I had no objections to the contract you drafted.I signed it when you told me to. "I didn¡¯t ask you to leave me the house and car after the divorce.You proposed that on your own ord.I might as well take up your offer since you see me as some scheming woman going after your money." She had no intention of keeping his house and car on the day of the divorce. Serenity only married him to move out of her sister''s ce while giving her sister peace of mind. These were the only reasons and nothing else. "You seem to think I¡¯m out to search for another guy and cheat on you.You saw me and Mr.Bill sitting together when I apanied Jasmine on her blind date.I bet that was what you were thinking.People might think you were jealous." Zachary hissed. "Trust me.I don''t get jealous." ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "Well, it seemed to me you were pretty jealous." Zachary did not look so upset anymore after Serenity cleared the air. With tension in the room lifted, Serenity poked fun, "Uff.I could smell the jealousy from a mile away.I guess you''re putting the Word of the Day to good use." Chapter 58 Chapter 58 Chapter 58 Zachary might pull a long face, but a rush of blood crept to his ears.He was blushing for getting the wrong idea about Serenity, not because he was shy. There was no way he could be shy! "It was the question of a man¡¯s pride!" "Ha!" Serenity scoffed. Zachary''s handsome face wentpletely red. "I don''t like or love you, so why would I be jealous? I couldn''t care less who you''re with if it weren''t an affair" "You don''t have to stress that you don''t like or love me multiple times as if I¡¯m all over you. This is only a marriage of convenience. To be honest, I was in a hurry to move out because I didn¡¯t want my sister and her husband to fight because of me.I agreed to your nana¡¯s proposal to get a marriage license with you so I had a ce to stay. "If you want to talk about an ulterior motive, then it would be your house.I get free amodation and save on rent while still putting my sister at ease." Zachary was lost for words.His house was more appealing to her than him as a person. Zachary had no qualms admitting his non-existent feelings for Serenity. However, it was a bit much to hear the same thinging from her mouth. "I stand by my marriage vows.Wouldn''t it be better if I stay in the house and drive the car to look for another man since you''re gonna leave them to me six months down the road after the divorce anyway? Why should I subject myself to being used of infidelity?" Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary was speechless. It took a while before he ate a humble pie and apologized to Serenity. "I''m sorry, Serenity.I misjudged you." Zachary did not have a leg to stand on anyway. His actions warranted an apology. "Juste to me if you have a problem next time.Don¡¯t lock me out the door like earlier.I anticipate troubles in your future marriage if you keep up with that.It''d be worse if your wife had the same personality as yours.The rtionship will end in silent treatments before breaking downpletely." After a brief silence, Zachary reminded her, "I''m already in a marriage.We don¡¯t share the same personality." Zachary acted petty tonight, unlike Serenity who had been nothing but thoughtful. After a brief silence, Serenity replied, "I''m talking about your future marriage.Not me." It was in Zachary¡¯s ns to divorce six monthster. Still, it was written clearly on the contract that the divorce would only happen if there remained no sparks between them. Zachary''s distrustful and stuck-up nature was not the most attractive trait in Serenity''s books. Even so, she had to admit that she could count on Zachary because he was attentive and considerate in many other ways. "I don''t have feelings for anyone." "That sounds about right.Maybe you''ll meet someone if you could get down from your high horse once in a while and stop thinking that everyone¡¯s out to get you.You struck gold when you married me." Zachary thought to himself, ¡®Struck gold? More like coal.He had never met such a narcissistic woman in his life. "Alright now.Now that everything''s in the clear, you should go to bed." Although Zachary disliked her tone, he said nothing in the end. He returned to his room and mmed the door. Serenity murmured under her breath, "I won''t feel bad even if you break the door.This is your house anyway!" Chapter 59 Chapter 59 Chapter 59 It was a silent night. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. The following morning, Serenity got up and watered the nts on the balcony. Nothing beat the view of mother nature. Serenity had to say that spending a little bit of time in the mini garden had always put her in a good mood. At least, it cleared her mind and soul of the lingering annoyance she had for Zachary. The mini garden was only made possible by Zachary. After getting overst night, Serenity went into the kitchen to make breakfast. It did not take long before Zachary was up as well.He walked to the kitchen door and watched Serenity at work.His pursed lips quivered. "Morning, Serenity." Serenity turned her head around to look at him. "Morning." "Can I help you with anything?" "I''m good.You can put theundry out and sweep the ce if you have nothing to do." Zachary was taken aback. Well, she was not shy to order him around. Yet, a word slipped past his lips. "Sure." He turned on his heel and walked away. Zachary hung theundry in the sun before getting his hands dirty with the cleaning. The house was spotless since there were only both of them upying such a huge space. Not to mention, they were often away at work. However, Zachary swept every nook and cranny, leaving no corners uncleaned. By the time Serenity had breakfast ready, Zachary was far fromplete. "What''s taking you so long?" Serenity muttered before grabbing the broom from Zachary. Zachary, *..." Serenity swiftly finished the job in a few minutes. Opening his mouth, Zachary wanted to get a word out but decided against it. He stole a few nces at Serenity. After the misunderstandingst night, Serenity was livid and even hit him. Lucky for him, Serenity did not seem upset anymore and made breakfast for him too. The girl was not one to be messed with! Zachary finally got a feel for where Serenity drew the line. It was preferable to solve any issues face-to-face. Otherwise, he should find the right time to cut to the chase. No usation, no bad blood. She was an easygoing girl. "You can look at me openly.No need to act like peeping Tom.I know I''m pretty.I can bag silver at a beauty contest." Zacharyughed. "I thought you''d say you''ll bring home the crown." Serenity brazenly responded, "I should be humble.I shouldn''t say it out loud even if I have what it takes to be the champion." Zachary, *..." After washing her hands, Serenity beckoned Zachary to have breakfast. She made egg muffins and sausages. The couple had a couple of them each. Thebination of red bell pepper, cherry tomatoes, and cheese in the muffin was Serenity''s favorite. "I''ll drive you to the shopter" Zachary said. Without picking her head up, Serenity refused. "I can get a cab." "It''s not far from here.It won''t take up much of my time to drive you to the shop and get to the office.I can be flexible with my working hours." He called the shots at York Corporation after all. Zachary was free toe and go at any time. It was not like anyone could and would stop him. "Alright then.We should leave after breakfast.Traffic is horrible during rush hour." "Sure," Zachary answered. No matter what, she was his wife. He had the means of transportation and time to take her to work. No way was Zachary going to allow another man to drive his wife to ces. Ring, ring, ring... It was Serenity''s phone. Serenity had the habit of putting her phone on the dining table during meals. As the couple was sitting side-by-side, Zachary was tall enough to get a good view of her mobile screen even at a seated position. The caller ID was "Pretty Boy Shawn". Pretty boy! Chapter 60 Chapter 60 Chapter 60 Zachary had his doubts about Serenity''s aesthetics. Sure, Shawn was good-looking, but Shawn had nothing on him; he was way more attractive than Shawn. Zachary wondered what name he was saved as in Serenity¡¯s list of contacts. The curiosity was eating Zachary up inside. Serenity took Shawn''s call. "Morning, Serenity." "That''s early.What''s up?" "Have you had breakfast, Serenity? I''ll pick you up for work, and we can have breakfast together.My treat or you can buy me breakfast if you want to." Shawn''s voice reflected hopeful anticipation. Since he was a huge help to Serenityst night, Shawn now had an excuse to drive Serenity around and buy her breakfast. "That''s okay.I¡¯m nearly finished with my breakfast.My husband will be taking me to workter, so you don''t have to make the long trip." Oblivious to Shawn''s feelings for her, Serenity simply did not want Shawn to brace the long distance from his home to Brynfield while getting stuck in the morning rush traffic. Shawn''s wishful thinking was crushed by the mention of Serenity''s husband. That poured cold water on Shawn''s enthusiasm for sure. It slipped Shawn''s mind that Serenity was taken! Serenity had always been single, but she suddenly changed her marital status for a stranger. Why could she not wait for him? Although Shawn was young, he was happy to be her husband. It was a pity that Serenity never saw Shawn as a man. Shawn was only a younger brother to Serenity. They had known each other for a long time. From the moment he understood what love was, Serenity became his crush. It was a shame... Nothing came of it. "Okay then.I''ll have your bike delivered to the shop once it''s repaired." Despite his heartbreak, Shawn kept it cool in case Serenity picked up on weird vibes. "Thank you." "Don''t mention it.Well, I''ll leave you to finishing your breakfast." Shawn quickly hung up the call. He was afraid he would reveal his true feelings if the conversation carried on. He did not want to blow up in Serenity''s face. Zachary overheard the entire exchange. He was unaware of the smile across his lips when Serenity mentioned that her husband would be driving her to work. Serenity put down the phone only for it to ring again. This time, it was an unidentified number. Serenity hesitated for a moment before epting the strange call. "Serenity, it''s your brother." The unrecognized voice of a man saw Serenity furrowing her brows. She retorted, "Brother? My mom only gave birth to me and my sister.We don''t have a brother." As her parents bore no son, the family home and field were upied by her uncles after her parents passed away. Her grandparents were still around, living in Serenity¡¯s family home. It had been years since the sisters returned to their hometown. At least for now, it was not in the sisters¡¯ n yet to go to court and reim the house. "I''m Mike, your cousin." The person on the other end made his identity known.This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Serenity dug into her memory. It seemed she did have a cousin named Mike. "What do you want?" After years of no contact, it could not be good news now that he called her. Serenity had her guard up. Since the Hunts¡¯ home was over an hour''s drive from the city, it was unlikely they knew she was married. That bloodsucking family demanded money from Liberty when she got married. If they were going to ask the same from Serenity, Serenity would not hesitate to kick them out! Chapter 61 Chapter 61 Chapter 61 "Grandmom is sick.It''s liver cancer, but the good news is that it¡¯s at an early stage," Mike said on the phone. "The doctor rmended going for treatment in the city.You and your sister have settled down in the city and know how to get around.Make a hospital appointment for Grandmom.We''ll set out in a bit and take Grandmom to the hospital. "This way, Grandmom can see a specialist right away when she arrives.I heard that you must pay some sort of deposit for a treatment, so don''t forget to make the payment.Although your parents aren''t around, she''s your grandmother too.You girls have never contributed to Grandmom and Granddad''s living expenses.Now that Grandmom is sick, you should cover for her medical expenses to make up for the neglected family support." Serenity grimaced as her cousin went on about the n.She lost her parents at the age of ten. Serenity and Liberty then received their life insurance payout of 1.2 million dors. Fair enough for Grandmom and Granddad to want a share since they were their dad''s parents. As the sisters were underaged then, the grandparents got a bigger share than they deserved. Serenity also knew that the grandparents took half of the insurance money and divided it among her uncles and aunts. Each uncle received a hundred and fifty thousand dors while the two aunts got a share of twenty thousand bucks each. The rest was for the grandparents¡¯ retirement. Although Serenity was only ten back then, she remembered every single detail. It had not been forgotten that the grandparents made it official through a written agreement, witnessed by the town officials and Serenity¡¯s maternal side of the family, that the sisters did not have to pay for the grandparents¡¯ living expenses so long as the sisters gave up a bigger portion of the insurance payout to the grandparents. The contract was signed and sealed by the grandparents, uncles, and aunts as well as both of them sisters. There were three copies of the contract, which were kept by the sisters, the grandparents, and the town community. Despite the multitude of witnesses, Mike had the nerve to use the sisters of never providing for the grandparents. No rtives were willing to take in the sisters after they lost their parents. Since their paternal grandparents took half of the 1.2 million insurance payout, the maternal grandparents did not want to lose out and demanded four hundred thousand dors too. The sisters were left with two hundred thousand bucks in the end. Liberty, only fifteen years old at the time, arranged for their parents¡¯ funeral and sorted out Serenity¡¯s paperwork to get into boarding school. Serenity''s education was guaranteed along with her meals without being dependent on the hospitality of others. Such was the life of the sisters after their parents¡¯ passing. The so-called rtives never reached out or lent a helping hand. However, the same rtives showed up unannounced one day, demanding money when Liberty was going to walk down the aisle. The way they saw it was that the family should be sharing the wealth now that Liberty made it big. Only these rtives were capable of such a shameless act. It came as no surprise that the family was demanding for the sisters to pay the medical fees now that the grandmother was sick. "Mr.Hunt, you''re twelve years older than me if I remember correctly.Fifteen years ago, you were twenty- two when my parents died in an ident.You were there when we were splitting the insurance payout.Don¡¯t tell me you''ve forgotten that we don¡¯t need to pay for Grandmom and Granddad''¡¯s maintenance in exchange for the insurance money. "You used the hundred and fifty thousand dors from Grandmom and Granddad to build a house.The hundred thousand dors was also for their retirement.After enjoying my parents¡¯ blood money, you have the cheek to use me of not contributing to the family support and want me to make up for it?!" Fifteen years ago, a hundred and fifty thousand bucks was arge sum of money. It was enough to build a house from the ground up. "Oh, I forgot.Of course you do, since you have no shame! I''m telling you tight now, Mike.I couldn''t care less!" Serenity terminated the call. Mike''s attempt to call again earned him a spot in Serenity''s cklisted contacts. Zachary overheard the entire conversation. He had not looked into Serenity''s past and only heard from Nana that Serenity lost her parents to a car wreck at the age of ten. The sister scraped through life andpleted their studies with the insurance money. That exined Serenity¡¯s great rtionship with her sister. Well, they only had each other for more than a decade after all. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. To Serenity, Liberty was the only family she had in the world. It seemed that Zachary should dig further into Serenity''s past. Serenity never spoke to Zachary about her extended family, nor did Zachary have the curiosity to ask. Chapter 62 Chapter 62 Chapter 62 After the couple finished breakfast, Zachary took his keys to send Serenity to work. As the couple walked down the stairs, the awaiting squad of bodyguards downstairs scattered and pretended to be passers-by. Taking notice of the luxury sedans parked downstairs, including a Rolls Royce, Serenity said to Zachary, "I know we''re living in a nice neighborhood, but I didn¡¯t expect to see a Rolls Royce here." Since the Rolls Royce owner could afford such an expensive car, they should be living in a huge mansion. Why did they live in an apartment building instead? Was it because the ce was closer to work or their children¡¯s school? Serenity could never understand the world of the wealthy. Zachary answered, "Yeah.Looks can be unassuming.There are many who are rich but keep a low profile." Serenity thought to herself, ¡®As if a Rolls Royce screams a low profile¡¯ ying it cool, Zachary took the wheel of his national MPV and drove his wife to work. Once he was gone, the bodyguards regrouped and exchanged nces. In the end, they reached a consensus that they would follow behind Mr.Zachary in secret and wait for him to drop the missus off before taking him to the office. Serenity had no idea that her man was the unassuming rich man. Despite owning a Rolls Royce, he took her to work in a ten-thousand-dor car. She called Liberty to tell her that Grandmom was sick. As the Hunts intended to have her treated in a hospital in the city, Serenity warned Liberty against footing the medical bill. Although it had been years since the sisters returned to their hometown, the sisters caught wind that their rtives were living the life there. Their cousins were doing quite well for themselves in their own careers and businesses. Their grandparents were blessed with many children and grandchildren, so it was not the sisters¡¯ job to take care of an absent grandmother''s medical fees. Since Liberty was five years older than Serenity, she had a better understanding of the rtives and harbored a greater grudge. She resented both the paternal and maternal sides of the family. Liberty scoffed coldly. "I don''t have the money.Even if I do, I won''t chip in for the old hag''s bills.Seren, don''t pick up their calls anymore. Block them all. "These people are bloodsuckers.We can forget about getting rid of them if you even give in just once." Liberty learned a painful lesson. "I''m one step ahead.I''ve blocked his number, Liberty." "Good." Liberty could rx now. It was a good thing that the Hunts had no clue of the sisters¡¯ current addresses. Liberty was not staying at her previous address after getting married. Plus, she threw the Hunts out when they brazenly demanded money. Surely, these people would not have the audacity to look for Liberty anymore. "Seren, invite Zachary over for dinner tonight." Serenity took a nce at Zachary and asked, "My sister said dinner at her ce tonight.Do you have time today?" "We should go since she invited us.Just say yes." The couple had a squabble afterst night''s debacle. Knowing that he was in the wrong, Zachary adopted a more tolerant attitude and was down with whatever Serenity had nned.? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Chapter 63 Chapter 63 Chapter 63 Serenity responded to her sister, saying that she and Zachary would be there for dinner tonight. After Serenity hung up on Liberty, Zachary asked, "Do you get along with your extended family?" "No" Serenity was frank and honest. She added, "My parents passed away in a car crash when I was ten.No one from my paternal or maternal sides of the family wanted to raise my sister and I. "However, all of them wanted a piece of the insurance payout.Since my uncles had no right to the money, they instructed my grandparents to get more out of us.My dad was the youngest son, so he didn''t get much attention in the family.My grandparents favored my uncles instead. "They said that we don''t have to pay for family support in exchange for a bigger chunk of the insurance payout.They took six hundred thousand dors and signed the contract to relinquish care for us and our responsibility to them.My grandparents also moved into the two-story house my parents had built just before passing away.They said the house was theirs since my parents were no longer around. "My grandparents mentioned that we don''t need a house since we can find a guy to depend on when we grow up.We were young back then, and no one had our backs, so the house was upied by my grandparents.We used to return for a short stay during our school holidays, but we received judging looks as if we were there to steal the ce from them. "Liberty said that our parents¡¯ names are on the title deed.We''ll file a suit and reim the property when our grandparents are gone.We won''t leave the house to our uncles." Zachary uttered, "Let me know if you need our help when you go to court.I know a lot ofwyers." York Corporation had its own legal team. Serenity was grateful. "I''ll ask if I need help." N?velDrama.Org owns this. It would be probably a few years before her grandparents kicked the bucket.Serenity and Zachary would probably be divorced by the time the legal battle came about. "Did your mom''s family stick up for you?" The maternal grandparents tended to have a softer spot for their grandchildren. Serenity said bitterly, "My mom had a rough life.She had been through the system multiple times before she was adopted. Since Mom isn¡¯t my grandparents¡¯ own, they only felt the responsibility to raise her without giving her much love. After my mom was gone, they believed they got nothing out of bringing her up. "So, they took four hundred thousand dors out of the pot of insurance money.Liberty and I were left with two hundred thousand.No one looked out for us.No one stuck up for us.All they were looking out for was their own interest.If it weren''t for the vige officials, Liberty and I would probably be left with nothing." Saddened by the past, Serenity turned her head away and looked out the window. Tears streamed down her cheeks. Time had not been kind. She still could not get over the matter even after fifteen years. Blood was thicker than water. Never mind her maternal side of the family as Mom was adopted. However, Dad was the Hunts¡¯ flesh and blood, but the family showed no mercy toward the sisters. It took a while for Serenity to get ahold of herself. She uttered faintly, "Now my Grandmom is sick.It''s the early stage of liver cancer.She wants to be treated in a hospital here in the city.My cousin had the nerve to call and get me to organize the whole thing. "He also told me to pay the medical fees.Cancer treatment is not cheap.Even if I do have the money, I¡¯m not going to waste it on her.To think they expect me to pay after what they''ve done to me and Liberty. "The best I can give her is a thousand bucks for food.They won''t get any more out of me." Zachary unhurriedly replied, "You don''t have to give them a penny if you don''t want to.They won''t thank you for giving the money.They''ll call you cheap and ungrateful.You won''t feelfortable giving them more anyway.It''s pointless to do it since you can''t win. "Screw them.They did you wrong years ago, so don''t let them im the moral high ground." Zachary had to be tough to take the helm of York Corporation. Chapter 64 Chapter 64 Chapter 64 Zachary believed Serenity should not fork out even a dime. Serenity would bebeled ungrateful whether she dished out the cash or not. She might as well save herself the pain and not pay the family at all. The sisters were underaged when they lost their parents. Yet, the rtives had the heart to abandon them, by not only taking a chunk out of the insurance payout but also upying the sisters¡¯ family home. Thank goodness Liberty knew better and managed to ovee the years. Seeing that Zachary had a point, Serenity thought about it and said, "You''re tight, Mr.York.I''ll take your advice and give them nothing.I couldn''t care less what they say about me." Those people were not ashamed of their own actions back then. Why should she now? Anyone who came at her about Grandmom being old and she was family would feel Serenity¡¯s wrath. Those people should step into Serenity¡¯s shoes before they have the right to judge. Serenity would only ept criticism from the people who could forgive and forget as well as repay hurt with kindness for what she had been through. People should never judge a man until they have walked a mile in his boots. Serenity could not stand people who imed the moral high grounds.? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Soon, Zachary dropped Serenity off at the entrance of Wiltspoon School. Since the students were in ss at this hour, business was slow around the school area. Sitting behind the cash register, Jasmine fiddled with her phone. With Zachary dropping Serenity off, Jasmine immediately rose to her feet. "Mr.York." Jasmine said hello to Zachary. Without getting down from the car, Zachary rolled down his window and looked into the shop. He responded to Jasmine with a nod and half a smile. "You better get to work.Send me a text when you arrive at the office." "Sure." Zachary nodded at the girls before winding his window up.He put the car in reverse to back his way out and drove off. "Where''s your bike?" Jasmine asked suggestively, "Is your husband going to do pick-ups and drop-offs from now on? It seems that you''re getting along well." "Yeah, we are" The couple got on fine when Zachary did not cross her line and Serenity did not whack him. "For some reason, my bike broke down in the middle of the road.I was lucky to run into your cousin.Shawn got my bike towed to the repair shop.He also drove me home.We should ask him out, so I can buy him dinner.You cane along too." "What are friends for?" "Still, he helped me.The least I can do is buy him dinner.I don''t like owing favors." Jasmine was tempted to say something, but now that Serenity was married, it made sense why she would rather not feel indebted to others, especially men. "Okay.You fix the date.I''ll surely be there.I¡¯m happy to do whatever that doesn''t cost me anything." Chapter 65 Chapter 65 Chapter 65 Meanwhile, Zachary got to work and dropped the secretary an instruction on his way to his office. "Tell the administrative executive to see me." The secretary made an internal call to the administrative executive, Josh Bucham. "Mr.Bucham, Mr.York wants to see you in his office." Josh took the request without a question and hung up. A few minutester, Josh knocked on the CEO''s office and entered the room. Zachary was knee-deep in his paperwork. With Josh stepping into the office, Zachary put down his pen and beckoned him toe over. "You need me for something?" ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Josh and Zachary graduated from the same college. Knowing well what Josh was capable of, Zachary signed him to thepany. Josh proved his worth as an elite at York Corporation, paving his way up to the position as Zachary''s administrative executive. Josh had Zachary¡¯s utmost trust. "Yeah, but it''s for something personal.I need a minute alone with you." Josh took a seat and said with a smile, "You could''ve said that on the phone." Although Josh was an administrative executive, Zachary would sometimes entrust him with personal affairs. Josh was used to it. "Can you investigate something for me?" "Now that you''ve mentioned it, I''ve done a lot of legwork for you.You can tell me straight what it''s about." The Buchams were an elusive and wealthy family, albeit discreet and more so than the Yorks. Rarely anyone knew that the Buchams were high up on the socialdder. Since Josh was not the firstborn of his generation, he did not have to assume responsibility as the head of household. Nevertheless, his words carried weight among his siblings, and the present head had much confidence in Josh. The Buchams had a knack for digging out information, and theirwork extended far and wide to many major cities. This was especially true in their home base, Wiltspoon. They could track down whatever they wanted to know. Of course, not everybody had the privilege to ess the Buchams¡¯work of information. Since Zachary had a personal and work rtionship with Josh, plus the head of the Buchams held Zachary in high regard, the Buchams would do their best to help whenever Zachary asked. "Remember I told you about Nana nagging me to marry her lifesaver?" "Yeah.Didn''t you marry her? What? Is your Nana nagging you to take in a second wife?" Josh poked fun. Zachary winced his face. "One is the limit.The men in my family can''t have another woman." "You''re interested in your wife, so you want me to look into her past?" "Well, I won''t say I''m interested.I just thought I should learn more about her now that we''re married.I need information on her family background." Serenity told Zachary a little about the Hunts but not the full picture, so Zachary got Josh to do the legwork. Zachary needed to know what he was getting into before he could help Serenity when she was in trouble. That was right. Zachary must remind himself not to act on impulse and fling out usations like he did thest time. Look where it got him. "You know, you could learn more about her family if you take the time to get to know her." It seemed like the easiest solution in Josh''s eyes. Well, the investigation would not require Josh to use his family¡¯swork when he could just assign a few of his men to snoop around. As far as he knew, Zachary''s wife was an ordinary woman. Grandma May was drawn to the woman''s heart of gold after thetter saved her life. The woman who received Grandma May''s stamp of approval must be tight-minded. Josh dared say that his old friend would fall for the woman in no time. "She might run into some problems. I need to get to the bottom of the matter before I can help her" Josh was intrigued. "Why? Have you fallen in love with her? You¡¯re taking her side already." "It doesn''t matter whether I love her.She''s my wife.Even though its only by name, she''s still my woman.I''ll protect her from trouble, not because of my feelings for her, but for my pride as a man." Josh chuckled. "You''re only fooling yourself." Chapter 66 Chapter 66 Chapter 66 "Josh!" Zachary was peeved. It was the truth when Zachary said it was all for his pride. Serenity was his wife. It would be a p on his face if Serenity was harassed.He could not possibly let that happen. "Fine, fine.I let you be.It''s all for your pride and dignity.Alright, I''ll look into the matter.Your wife is Serenity Hunt, right? You could¡¯ve asked Duncan to help you.As your administrative executive, I had a lot on my te with the business side of things.I don¡¯t even have time to get a drink of water." Getting up, Zachary went to pour a ss of water. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "Drink up.I don''t want you going around saying you don''t have time to even drink water." "Well, that took you long enough." "I thought you weren''t thirsty.You would''ve poured yourself a drink if you were.When have you ever asked for permission? Are we buddies or what?" Josh chuckled. "Duncan doesn''t know how to keep a tight lid." "That''s true.He can be a bbermouth." Josh shuddered. "Don''t forget to get me detailed information about all her family members." Learning from Serenity about her family, Zachary had a feeling that trouble was brewing for the sisters.He could wash his hand off Liberty''s affairs but not his wife''s. For that to happen, Zachary had to know what he was getting into. The art of winningy in knowing your own and the opponent''s strengths. Zachary had never fought an unsure battle. The Hunts could do their worst because Zachary had Serenity''s back all the way. "Doesn''t your wife only have a sister?" "She has a bunch of money-hungry rtives." Josh replied, "Oh.No wonder you keep your identity and marriage hidden.Things getplicated with that kind of family around." Zachary remained without a word. He did not withhold his identity and marriage because of the money-hungry rtives. Zachary''s intention was to observe Serenity¡¯s character for himself. Zachary hadbeled Serenity as a conniving woman when Nana nagged him into marrying Serenity. However, it seemed he was led by his own preconception and got off on the wrong foot with Serenity. Still, Serenity had to go through a test of character. Zachary woulde clean about everything and retreat from the agreement when he decided Serenity was worth spending the rest of his life with. They would then be a couple for real and grow old together. "Anything else?" Josh took two sips of water and asked. "That''s all.Get back to work." Josh put down the ss and got up to leave when Zachary threw a question. "Josh, how do you apologize when you''re wrong about a woman?" "What''s your mouth for? It''s to say sorry.Do you need me to teach you that?" Zachary, *..." "Oh, I got it.Are you asking me what''s an appropriate gift of apology? Girls love flowers, jewelry, perfume, skincare, and all that stuff.She''ll get the idea if you give her any of these." Chapter 67 Chapter 67 Chapter 67 Nothing good ever came out of Zachary''s mouth, to be honest. Perhaps Zachary should show his apology through his actions. "What''s the matter? Were you wrong about your wife? What did you do to warrant an apology gift?" Josh was in the mood for gossip. "None of your business.Get back to work.You''re going to be speaking with Mr.Williams about the partnership tonight.I''ll be busy tonight." Zachary had dinner ns with his wife at his sister-inw¡¯s. "Why are you busy? Where are you going?" "You should know that a married man shouldn''t spend all his time on work, or else it''ll give his wife an excuse to cheat on him." Josh, ".." He was speechless. At least Josh found out that the work was pushed to him so his boss could spend some time with his wife. Zachary sure thought he was all that just because he was married. Josh could get married too. He could then skip social engagements and overtime to go home to his wife. s, he did not have a girlfriend. There was no one in the picture even if Josh wanted to tie the knot any time soon. After taking the blow, Josh dejectedly retreated. Under the same blue sky, different individuals were engaging in different activities at various ces. After telling Serenity toe for dinner tonight, Liberty fed Sonny and pushed him in a stroller to get groceries. She took one step out the door when her husband''s call came in. "What''s the matter, Honey?" "Have you gotten the groceries?" Hank asked through the phone. "Not yet.I¡¯m on my way out.Do you fancy anything for tonight?" "Get extra groceries today.My parents and sister areing.My sister enjoys seafood, so get more of that.Oh, my mom''s favorite is beef.Get that too." Liberty replied, "Seafood is expensive.Your sister always asks for salmon and oysters whenever she comes.She could finish the whole te.The price of beef is high now.It costs sixty bucks a pound.I can''t even spend that kind of money for Sonny." She did not relish in hosting her inws. They would demand the best food and often criticize her in Hank''s presence. Liberty and Hank would get into a big fight and there would be silent treatments for days after their visit. Liberty''s sister-inw was the worst.She loved to meddle and instigate trouble between the couple. "Just do as you''re told.What''s with the insolence? You spent more than a thousand bucks on clothes last time.You''ve got to pay me back for that, so don''t use the household ount to pay for the groceries today." Liberty''s heart sank.She was furious too.She thought her husband only demanded to go halves to kick Serenity out. It never urred to Liberty that Hank meant what he said. "Hank, I might not be working, but I¡¯m taking care of your son at home and managing the household so you can bemitted to your career. You''re only the man you are today because of me. "You''re determined to go Dutch with me when I can¡¯t go to work.Are you trying to drive me up the wall or push me to work? Fine.Get your parents to take care of their grandchild, so I can start looking for a job tomorrow." "You gave birth to the child.Why should my parents look after the kid? I mean, the child is our responsibility as parents.We should take care of our son.My parents had it hard raising me and my sister.It''s time for them to rx and enjoy life.Let''s not take that away from them. N?velDrama.Org owns this. "It''s not like you don''t have the money.You could even pay for the damages to an expensive car.Don''t lie to me that you have nothing.You could ask some from Serenity.You can return to work and repay Serenity¡¯s money when Sonny starts school." Hank insisted on dividing the expenses.He believed he had it hard as Liberty sat and did nothing at home. She was only caring for a child while Hank had to pay for the living expenses and loans. Liberty had no use for money. Chapter 68 Chapter 68 Chapter 68 Hank¡¯s mom said Liberty''s education was for nothing. It was not like she could share the financial burden at home. A woman who could manage the house and earn an ie suited Hank best. Most importantly, Liberty did not bother to primp herself. She lost her beauty and grace, content with bing a fat and unkempt blob. Liberty was no longer the person she was before marriage. Hank would not dream of taking Liberty to social engagements, worried that his colleagues and clients would make fun of him. Liberty had nothing on Jessica. Hank''s words saw Liberty''s blood pressure rising. Liberty hung up the call. She omitted that she had invited Serenity and her husband over for dinner tonight. If both the inws and newlyweds came for dinner, there was bound to be a huge fight between them once the inws were gone. Nevertheless, why should Liberty stop her sister and her husband froming when her inws were free toe at any time? Liberty had a say in the family too. Although Hank paid for the house deposit and mortgage, Liberty contributed to the renovation and furnishing. All her savings were spent on the home. With that in mind, Liberty regained confidence. N?velDrama.Org owns this. She would get extra groceries since Serenity and her husband were joining for dinner. It was a good thing Serenity enjoyed seafood too. Well, if splitting the difference was what Hank wanted, Liberty would keep track of the inws¡¯ spending at their home too. It was time to settle the ounts with Hank once the inws left. By going halves, Liberty could not run the house on her own. Starting today, Liberty would not lend a hand in Hank''s affairs. He could handle his own clothes, socks, and meals for all she cared. Hank could forget her waiting on him hand and foot ever again. Hank was such a charmer, convincing her to quit her job when they were newlyweds because he had the means to take care of her. She was to be his prettiest bride at home. Liberty had to resign when she got pregnant early in the marriage. She could not watch her waistline after the birth of Sonny. For the sake of breastfeeding, Liberty ate and expanded sideways. Her change in figure was met with Hank''s criticism. Just as Liberty was staring at her son in the stroller, Sonny turned around and cried, "Mama." Liberty hummed and caressed her son''s head. She uttered softly, "You''re a good boy, Sonny." "Mama...Aunt Swer." "Are you thinking about your Aunt Seren? I invited her for dinner tonight.You''ll see herter." Getting the message, Sonny reflected joy on his young face. He was closest to his mother and aunt. Her son''s young and innocent face gave Serenity a reason to put her anger aside. Since her inws refused to help and Sonny was still young, Liberty had to endure another year before she could return to the workce. Liberty would not be considering her inws¡¯ persistent suggestion to have another kid. She barely held it together with one child. Liberty could forget about tegaining a career if she had another one. Without a job and an ie, Liberty had no say in the family. Hank said that his parents could not care for Sonny as it was time for them to rx and enjoy life, but Liberty knew for a fact that her inws took her sister-inw¡¯s children to school and back. Her parents-inw would rather care for their daughter''s children than spend time with their son''s child. At the end of the day, they saw Liberty as an outsider. Between their daughter''s children and daughter-inw, Liberty''s parents-inw made it clear through their actions who they favored. Chapter 69 Chapter 69 Chapter 69 Zachary made an unexpected appearance at Serenity''s shop in the afternoon. Serenity and Jasmine were ready to dig into their takeout after finishing the task at hand when Zachary arrived at the shop.He went directly into the shop. Surprised, Serenity stared nkly as Zachary approached her. Zachary made a beeline to Serenity and lowered his gaze to her face. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "Did you forget whom?" Snapping out of the shock, Serenity replied with a smile, "I didn¡¯t expect to see you here.What brings you here? Have you eaten? I can order you takeout if you¡®re hungry." Jasmine said hello to Zachary before picking up her food and hiding behind a huge shelf to eat.She left the space to the couple. "I had lunch.Why did you wait until now to have yours?" Zachary raised his hand to look at the time.It was almost one o''clock. Furrowing his brows, he told Serenity off, "Take your meals on time.Your body won''t be the same once you develop indigestion." He had an eleven o''clock lunch appointment with a client at a hotel today. Zachary enjoyed a good meal before dropping by at Serenity¡¯s shop. Had he known that Serenity dyed her lunchtime, Zachary would have called her along to his lunch appointment. Huh? No way! Zachary attended the lunch as the CEO. Bringing her along would expose his cover. Although startled by his own sudden thought, Zachary did not show it on his face. He said faintly, "Have your lunch in the car.I''m taking you somewhere." "Where to? Is it urgent?" Without offering an exnation, Zachary turned on his heel and left. After a quick contemtion, Serenity grabbed her takeout and informed Jasmine before chasing after Zachary. Once in the car, she asked, "Where on earth are we going? Must we do it now?" Zachary continued to withhold that information. Since Serenity got nothing out of him, she turned her attention to her lunch. By the time she finished, Zachary''s car hade to a stop. Serenity got out of the vehicle and saw that he brought her to a car dealership. "Buy a car? My bike is fixed.Shawn got my bike delivered to the shop.One of the wires short-circuited" Serenity walked toward a trash can to dump the food packaging. Watching as Zachary entered the car dealership without a word, Serenity mumbled under her breath and followed suit. Zachary had mentioned before that he would pay the deposit for a four-wheeled vehicle for her. Serenity rejected the kind offer as the shop was not too far from Brynfield.Her e-bike served her well for the journey. It never crossed her mind that Zachary would take her here to get a car. "I have a meeting at three.Better get right to it.Pick what you like.I''ll pay for it and get back to the office." Zachary added, "Don''t look at the price.Just check if the exterior and functionality is to your liking.Have a test drive.We can get it if the drive feels right to you." Serenity drew close to him and whispered in his ear, "What if I fancy a car that''s worth several hundred thousand dors? The deposit will be a lot for an expensive car.How much is yours? I''ll get the same brand." Zachan¡¯s national MPV was about a hundred thousand bucks. Although his dark eyes flickered in brilliance, his tone remained t. "Get a sedan then.Do you like ck or white?" "ck.Dirt is visible on white." "Sure," Zachary responded. He preferred a ck vehicle too. The couple shared simr tastes there. With the brand locked down, the selection was made easy. Serenity test-drove a few sedans and settled on an SUV. Zachary got a good feel of the car after a quick drive too. He went straight to make payment. She assumed it would be days before the car was ready for collection after making the initial payment. To her surprise, Zachary paid in full, and Serenity could drive the car right out of the dealership then and there. Chapter 70 Chapter 70 Chapter 70 "Didn''t you say you were only going to help me with the deposit?" Serenity asked Zachary in a hushed tone. "I could afford the car you picked, so I paid in full." "Oh." Serenity whispered, "I''ll wire you half the moneyter." Zachary nced at her. "It''s fine." ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Serenity blinked. By that, did he mean he was giving the car to her? Sure he could afford the car, but it was over a hundred thousand dors. Although they were husband and wife, they barely knew each other in the short period they were married. Most importantly, they signed an agreement to go their separate ways six monthster. Zachary''s sudden splurge on a hundred-thousand-dor car was a red g in Serenity¡¯s eyes. There was no free lunch in the world. Serenity dragged him out of the dealership and confronted him away from the public eye. "Mr.York, can you tell me why you''re gifting me with a car? I won''t feelfortable driving the car unless you rify that.I don¡¯t want to be indebted to you." Returning favors was the hardest thing to do. Zachary stared into her eyes. It took a while before he averted his gaze. Serenity picked up on the blush across his face. Serenity, "..." "Last night, um...I misjudged you..." Everything clicked. "You feel that you''ve wronged me, so the car is an apology gift?" Zachary''s eyes met hers.It was a good thing that she got it right away. "We cleared the misunderstandingst night, and you apologized to me.Although I was really angry then, I got over it.There''s no need for you to splurge on a car to make up for it." "It''s handy to have a car around." Without a doubt, Serenity understood the convenience of a car. "I''m not getting the car unless you let me pay you back.Besides, you''re going to transfer your car''s ownership to me when we divorce six monthster.I would¡¯ve gotten a car then." Zachary was choked for words. He drafted the agreement and made her sign it. Nevertheless, it bugged Zachary when she brought up the divorce. His face and tone quickly dropped to freezing temperatures. Zachary said, "Do you have the money to pay for the car now? I''ll make the payment if you don''t.You can wire me the moneyter." "I don''t have it now.I''ll wire you the money when I get home." Without another word, Zachary ditched Serenity and returned to the dealership. Having made the purchase, Zachary got into his car without waiting for Serenity and said, "I¡¯m heading back to the office." He drove away. Watching his receding vehicle, Serenity murmured to herself, "Is he angry with me? Is it because I split our finances? Well, he made it clear that the divorce is happening in six months, so for sure we must keep our finances separate.I don¡¯t want to be paying for this and that during the divorce.That would be a downer." Although there were no feelings involved between Serenity and Zachary, a divorce itself was not a joyous asion. It would only put her in a foul mood if Zachary went after repayments too. She had to protect herself in this respect. Zachary was not too pleased about it. He might be unhappy, but Serenity would not budge. Jasmine was being nosy. She asked when Serenity pulled up in the front of the shop with her new ride. "Did you go and get a car? I thought you went to a hotel...Hehe." Serenity rolled her eyes. "You''ve read too many chick lits.I didn¡¯t expect him to take me to a dealership.Look at my new car, Jasmine."It was her first car ever. Chapter 71 Chapter 71 Chapter 71 In a show of support, Jasmine circled Serenity¡¯s new ride andplimented, "Not bad.How much was it?" "About a hundred thousand bucks." "Was it paid in full or are you taking up a loan?" ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "My man made the full payment." Jasmine beamed and patted her best friend''s shoulder. "Wow, Serenity.It did not take long for you to bag that man and get him to buy you a car. "I knew you had it in you even though you didn''t know each other before the marriage.Mr.York must be blind if he didn''t fall for your charms." Serenity was the best in Jasmine¡¯ eyes. Once in the shop, Serenity poured herself a ss of water and chugged down half before replying, "You''re crazy.Zachary found out that Shawn drove me homest night.We nearly got into a fight because he thought I was Cheating on him.So he felt he did me wrong after I cleared the air and gave me a car as an apology." Jasmine, ".." Here she was, imagining a Lifetime movie out of Serenity¡¯s life when reality gave her a rude awakening. "Jasmine, I''ll be honest about Zachary and I since we''re close.I didn¡¯t even tell my sister.Truth is, Zachary gave me a contract to sign after we met the families on Saturday. "The contract was in his favor.He seemed to have a misconception that I was out to get his money.It was written in the contract that we''d have an amicable separation if we didn''t develop feelings for each other in the next six months.He''d transfer the ownership of the house and car to me as part of the divorce settlement.I guess that''s the damage to losing my youth. "He''s pretty generous on the matter.The house is all paid for and a prenuptial property.I simply moved in with my bags.I didn''t want to take what wasn''t mine, but since he had drafted the term on the contract, I just let him be and signed it.Still, I don¡¯t intend to ept anything that''s his.I''ll move out the same way I move in when the divorce happens. "I told him I''d pay him back when we were getting the car.He didn¡¯t seem too pleased about it and just left me.Well, he can be unhappy all he wants.I better be clear on this before things get ugly during the divorce." Jasmine, ".." A whileter, Jasmine poked her best friend on the forehead and uttered. "What''s in that head of yours, Serenity? Mr.York said you''ll divorce if you don''t fall in love with each other within the time frame.Why don''t you give it a go then? "Mr.York tends to keep to himself, so I bet you don¡¯t get much out of him.Men like that are softies.I believe you''ll have a happy ending if you can snag him.Do you think divorces are fun? Did you talk about the divorce with Mr.York just now?" Serenity remained silent. Jasmine knew Serenity too well that the silence was her answer. Caught betweenughter and tears, Jasmine remarked, "Well, don¡¯t me Mr.York for ditching you.Although he bought you a car as an apology, he had changed his attitude toward you for the better.Otherwise, he could''ve put the whole thing behind by saying sorry or giving you a bunch of worthless flowers.Why bother splurging on a car?" Serenity fell silent for a bit before answering, "I don¡¯t want to owe him even though we''re married.It''s not like we have feelings for each other.But, I must admit that he''s better than my brother-inw.At the very least, he paid for the living expenses and didn¡¯t make me go Dutch. "I have the means to get my own car.I''m going to wire him the moneyter or I won''t feelfortable taking the car.It''s like this car is a ticking time bomb, threatening to blow up in my face one day." Jasmine gave it a thought. "Sounds good.You''re an independent woman.Since Mr.York suspected you had a motive, you could prove to him that you''re not after his money." It would take time to get to know a person well.Free-spirited as she was, Serenity quickly put the matter behind her. Chapter 72 Chapter 72 Chapter 72 Zachary felt brushed off.He pulled a long face the entire afternoon, leaving everyone at York Corporation on tenterhooks. It was a mystery who stepped on the toes of the stone-faced CEO. As if his usual aloof demeanor was not enough, the tensed lines running along his chiseled face only made him scarier. Even Callum and Josh refrained from hanging around Zachary. Despite feeling exasperated, Zachary kept his promise and waited for Serenity at the shop after work. Since Serenity was busy, he stepped into the shop to help out behind the cash register. However, thebination of his stern outlook, his quiet presence, and his towering build scared the students away from the cash register. The students could only muster the courage to approach Serenity and Jasmine. Serenity said to him point-nk, "I''ll take over from here, Mr.York." Tilting his head, Zachary stared into Serenity''s eyes with utmost profundity. It took a while before he got up with a sour face and walked around the cash register to head outside the shop and stand like an ice sculpture. It was hard not to notice as Zachary stood there, emanating ominous vibes to stay away. Now the issue was not that no one came to him to make payment, but no one dared to set foot into the shop other than the people who were already there. Serenity, "..." Realizing this, Jasmine drew close and whispered in her best friend''s ear, "Serenity, take Mr.York away now.I can handle the shop on my own.His presence at the entrance is causing our sales to plummet." "Appreciate it, Jas." Serenity helplessly got up and walked out. She told Zachary, "Come on." Zachary stood still, refusing to move. It was only when Serenity tried to pull him away that he hissed through clenched teeth, "You think I¡¯m no help!" Not knowing what to think, Serenity reached out and grabbed his arm. "I don¡¯t think so.It''s not a job for you, that''s all.The students are afraid of you.They''re more terrified to see you than their teachers." She dragged him into the car. "I''ll take the new car home, and then you can drive us to my sister''s." Zachary did not voice an opinion, quietly agreeing to her n.He felt a little better. Serenity was right. As the heir of the Yorks, Zachary had never dabbled in the service sector. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. His birth as the firstborn had decided his fate to take over the family businesses and affairs. Zachary assumed his position as the CEO of York Corporation the moment he came of age and had the capability to carry on the business. Being at the top only added an air of aloofness to him. Apart from a few close executives, everyone else at York Corporation shied away from him. It was extraordinary that Serenity did not hold his stoic nature against him when they signed the papers minutes after they had just met. Hmm... He should really thank Serenity for not dismissing him. Zachary would have been humiliated if Serenity shunned him when he was willing to get a marriage license with her. Chapter 73 Chapter 73 Chapter 73 By the time Serenity parked her sweet new ride and got into Zachan¡¯s car, Zachary adopted a milder tone.He asked her, "This will be the first time I have dinner at your sisters.I should bring her a gift.What do your sister and brother-inw like?" Serenity buckled up. "Get a toy for Sonny.My brother-inw smokes, so get him a pack or two.We can just bring some fruit." "Right," Zachary replied. As the car drove out of Brynfield, he asked his wife, "Where should we get the stuff?" "There''s a store not too far from here.We''ll make a pit stop and get everything we need there.Mr.York, have you lived here before I moved in? I''ve noticed you don¡¯t seem familiar with the vicinity." Zachary took the time to pause before replying, "I bought this house ages ago, but I let it sit because I was staying with my parents.I thought I shouldn''t take up space at my family¡¯s home after we got married, so I moved into this house." "Does your family have a big house?" Since Zachary rarely brought up his family situation, Serenity took little interest in getting to know him. Now that Serenity picked up on his misconception and precaution toward her, Serenity would rather stay out of his personal affairs. "Our one big family is staying in the house under Nana and Gramps¡¯ name." Zachary was not lying about that. The Yorks¡¯ estate was registered to Nana and Gramps. After Gramps passed away, Nana urged Zachary''s dad to transfer the estate ownership to Zachary¡¯s dad and uncles. The estate was jointly owned by the family anyway. Nevertheless, Liam had not gone through with the ownership transfer yet. Zachary believed his dad wanted the house passed straight down to Nana''s grandchildren to save the family from cutting through red tape. Serenity took it that the Yorks were a middle-ss family so the whole family was living together under one roof. Grandma May did mention before that she loved having her children and grandchildren around. Nana probably did not want the family to break up and live in different parts of the city. "I''ll take you there at ater date." Zachary proposed without Serenity even asking.She was his wife in the eyes of thew. Zachary ought to show her around the family home, one way or another. N?velDrama.Org owns this. The family estate had multiple buildings across thend. Some of the buildings were for the employees. Zachary could use one of the employees¡¯ residences to fool Serenity if this were to happen before his identity reveal. "Give me the heads-up when you want to visit your family home.I need to prepare myself for it." Zachary curled his lips but quickly pressed his lips together in case Serenity caught him smiling. "Sure." All that talk cut the journey short. They soon arrived at the store Serenity mentioned. The couple went in empty-handed and came out with Zachary''s arms full of shopping bags. Serenity said to not overdo the shopping, but Zachary wanted to make it extra special since it was his first visit to her sister''s ce. While he did not mind beingbeled cheap, Zachary did not want people to think that Serenity made a poor choice by marrying him. Ring, ring, ring... With Serenity¡¯s phone ringing, she thought it was Liberty. Serenity pulled out her phone and saw that it was another unidentified number. She had a feeling that it was a call from the Hunts. She had already blocked cousin Mike''s number. Was another family member trying their luck on her now that Mike could not get in touch with her? Chapter 74 Chapter 74 Chapter 74 "Are you going to take the call?" Zachary asked as he caught his wife staring at her phone when he entered the car after loading the shopping bags in. "It might be my money-hungry rtives." "You''ll know who it is when you pick up the call.You can''t run forever.Don''t fear them.You got me." With him around, he would have her back no matter what. Serenity was embraced by warm tingles when Zachary said he got her. The guy might have many ws, but simrly, she was not perfect either. Zachary had gone above and beyond for her even though they got into the marriage knowing nothing about each other. That scored Zachary another brownie point in Serenity''¡¯s books. Serenity epted the call from the unidentified number. "Serenity, it''s me.Granddad." A slightly unfamiliar voice resounded withmand over the phone. Despite losing contact with the family back in hometown, Serenity identified the voice to be Granddad''s. Serenity hummed a response, waiting for Granddad to go on. "Mike called you in the afternoon to tell you that your Grandmom is sick and needs to be admitted into a hospital in the city. You were supposed to make an appointment with a specialist, but you didn¡¯t. We came this far only to be told to redo the examination before Grandmom could be admitted since we didn''t have an appointment. "Where are you and your sister staying? We couldn''t find you at yourst address. The people staying there said you moved away a long time ago. Couldn''t you let your family know beforehand? Do you have any respect for your family? "A lot of people havee along on this trip, so we don''t have a ce to stay.Hurry up and text us your current address.We need amodation for two days.Get cooking now.We haven''t had dinner.You could also wire me cash if you think we might be a bother in your house.We can stay at the hotel." Serenity saw a rush of blood to her head. Refusing to let his words get the better of her, Serenity asked with a t voice, "How did you get here? By bus or on your own?" "Your cousins took us in their cars.Speaking of which, don¡¯t forget to pay for your cousin''s gas.The trip cost a lot." "Oh, so your precious children and grandchildren are penniless and strapped for cash?" "What are you talking about, Serenity? Just because you and your sister have it good in the city, it doesn''t give you the right to say that about your family.Well, excuse me.You must be fairly disappointed because your cousins are sessful in their careers.Your cousin, John, has an annual ie of a million..." Serenity cut Granddad off with a tap on the screen.She knew Granddad had a big mouth. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Thetter would brag about every tiny achievement of his children and grandchildren so the world would know how great his offspring was. It stroked his ego, that was for sure. Despite having sessful children and grandchildren like John who made a million a year, Granddad had the nerve to get Serenity to pay for the hotel and gas. Did they take her for a pushover? Granddad''s eyes widened as he was interrupted from blowing his horn, and tags quickly took over. Stopping himself from smashing the phone, Granddadshed out, "Serenity, that b*tch, hung up on me!" Mike said, "She probably blocked my number." "Does she think she doesn''t have to pay by refusing the call? Do you know where the sisters are working? Make them show up and cough out the money for your grandmom¡¯s medical fees.We''ll need some funds to stay here and take care of her.Get the sisters to pay for that too." Mike shook his head. "I don¡¯t know, but I have a way to make theme looking for us and pay up." As ruthlessness shed past his eyes, Mike decided to use his connections to teach the sisters a lesson. Chapter 75 Chapter 75 Chapter 75 Serenity knew her money-driven rtives were not going to stop there. Nevertheless, the family had no idea where the sisters were living. Since it was not easy to scour the whole city for her and Liberty''s whereabouts, Serenity quickly put the matter behind her so she could enjoy a nice dinner at her sister''s. Having been listening to the conversation the whole time, Zachary did not take the matter lightly.He had instructed Josh to get a file on the Hunts¡¯ and trust that he would hear back soon. The couple arrived at Liberty''s apartment and ran into Liberty who was taking out the trash downstairs. "Liberty." Happy to see her sister, Serenity darted toward Liberty. "You''re here, Seren." The fatigue across Liberty''s face was swept away at the sight of her sister and brother-inw. With Zachary retrieving bags of gifts from the car, Liberty whined, "We''re family.You shouldn''t have to get us anything." "It''s only some fruit, Liberty." Taken in by Zachary''s kind gesture, Liberty was warming up to her honest and courteous brother-in- law. Although a man of few words, Zachary was attentive and considerate toward Serenity. Serenity would probably be stumped to find out what Liberty thought about Zachary. "Is Hank back yet?" Serenity affectionately held Liberty''s arm. "Where''s Sonny?" "Hank is on the way home.He should be here soon.Sonny''s upstairs.My inws are here too.They''re watching over Sonny so I can take the trash out." Hearing that Liberty''s inws were here too, Serenity furrowed her sleek brows without saying a word. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. There were certain things the sisters could keep between themselves. There was no need to say it in front of Zachary. The Browns were aware that Serenity had gotten married. Hank''s sister, Chelsea, was here to inform Liberty that she would be sending her children to a school in the city. The children would be staying with Liberty so she could keep an eye on them. Since Liberty was already a stay-at-home- mom, a few more children would not hurt. In fact, it had always been Chelsea''s n, but Hank did not have enough room to amodate her children. Chelsea''s daughter was eleven this year and entering junior high in the uing school year while her son was ten. Both her daughter and son certainly could not share a room. Chelsea''s youngest son was three years old and could only fall asleep in thepany of adults. Now that Serenity had married and moved out, Hank''s ce had an extra room for Chelsea''s two kids. It was more than once that Chelsea moaned to Hank about Serenity living on Hank''s property. Hank had no obligation to provide shelter for Serenity. Chelsea resented Serenity for upying a room that could have been for her children instead. Partial to his family, Hank started to find Serenity an eyesore. He started to pick fights with his wife and managed to force Serenity out of the house. Liberty beckoned Serenity and Zachary toe up to the apartment. They had just stepped out of the elevator when Liberty overheard her son''s cries. "Sonny''s crying." Serenity was more anxious than Liberty. Thetter then whipped out her house keys and opened the door, saying, "The children must be fighting over a toy." Chelsea''s youngest son was older than Sonny by a year. The two boys often fought over toys when they yed together. Liberty walked into the house to Sonny running over with his favorite toy, asking for hugs. Chapter 76 Chapter 76 Chapter 76 Chelsea''s youngest son was right behind Sonny, wailing and demanding, "I want the ne Sonny got." Gripping the toy ne against his chest, Sonny nervously looked back at his cousin and murmured, "Huggies, Mama.Huggies, Mama." Liberty picked her son up. "Liberty, tell Sonny to give the ne to my son.We''re your guests.Sonny should be nice to my son." Chelsea came over and wiped away her son''s tears before standing up to grab the toy ne from Sonny. Seeing that Sonny refused to let go, Chelsea was about to snatch the toy right out of Sonny''s hand when she caught a glimpse of Serenity and her husband. N?velDrama.Org owns this. Zachary had his hands full with bags.She immediately withdrew her arms and greeted Serenity with a smile. "Long time no see, Serenity.Is this your husband? Why, he¡¯s a handsome and striking man, isn''t he?" Not only was the man attractive, but he also carried himself with a presence and grace that even Hank, despite being in a managerial position, could not beat. Chelsea was envious of Serenity. "Long time no see, Chelsea.This is my husband, Zachary." Chelsea exchanged greetings with Zachary. Aloof as ever, Zachary gave a nod without a word. Zachary took an instant dislike to Chelsea after witnessing the woman snatching Sonny''s toy for her son. Sonny was younger than his cousin, and most importantly, the toy belonged to him. Why should Sonny give in to his cousin''s demand? As someone who has his people''s best interest at heart, Zachary was not going to stand by and let one of his own get the short end of the stick. Zachary adored the little man and could not bear to put Sonny in that Position. Liberty asked Serenity and Zachary toe in as Chelsea picked up her son. Her son must be spoiled silly because he was still fussing over Sonny''s toy. Hank''s parents were all smiles, seeing that Serenity and her husband came bearing gifts. They were not fond of Serenity before, but those feelings changed now that thetter was married and had moved out. Mr.and Mrs.Brown heard that Serenity¡¯s husband owned a house at Brynfield debt-free and was ina senior position in a majorpany. These were good enough reasons to get on Serenity¡¯s good side. Everybody took a seat. Zachary put the shopping bags on the coffee table. Spotting a new toy among other stuff. Chelsea opened the shopping bag and took out a new toy set to give to her son. She said, "Don¡¯t cry, bubs.Let''s y with the new toy.We don''t like Sonny''s old toy, do we?" Zachary clenched his jawline and gave Chelsea a grimacing look as tension rose in the room. Mr.Brown nudged his wife, hinting her to hold down their daughter from going too far. Serenity''s husband brought these new toys for Sonny. Chelsea was only embarrassing herself for iming things without permission. Feeling awkward, Chelsea¡®s husband, George Repton, got up immediately to grab the new toy set from his son and put it back on the coffee table. George carried his son and settled him down. "Be a good boy now, bubs.I''ll get you a new toyter." Chelsea could not read the room to save her life. Zachary blurted, "Let him y with the toy.I bought a lot of new toys for Sonny.He won¡¯t be missing that." Having noticed the dirty hands of the Repton¡¯s child, Zachary regarded the toy that was touched as soiled and tainted. Hence, the kid could have the toy for all he cared. He gestured to Serenity to give the new toy set to the Repton kid. Not wanting to make things harder for Liberty than they already were, Serenity picked up the toy and gave it to Chelsea¡¯s son. Then, Serenity noticed the little guy''s soiled hands and understood the reason behind Zachary¡¯s sudden generosity. Chapter 77 Chapter 77 Chapter 77 Since Zachary was a bit of a germaphobe, the kid''s dirty hands on the new toy did not sit well with him. That was why he was generous to give away the new toy. Now that the two young ones got over their whining, the negative vibe among the adults subsided. Although Zachary said nothing, the Browns got the hint from his eyes and expression to never rub him the wrong way. Mrs.Brown already had the impression that Serenity was bad news, but her man meant business too. She was aware of Liberty''s rtionship with Serenity and her son''s deeds too, so she needed to warn her son against going overboard. Liberty might have taken an unpaid role as a stay-at-home mom, but she did give the Browns their first grandson, and that should count as something. Hank soon returned home. After everybody had a brief rest on the couch, Liberty called them to the dining table as dinner was ready. Serenity followed her sister to the kitchen to bring out the food. While there, Serenity noticed a few seafood dishes. She whispered, "Liberty, Zachary and I can just have your everyday home-cooked meals.You didn''t have to get us seafood." "Your brother-inw told me to get a lot.You know Chelsea''s family loves seafood, but they wouldn''t have it at home since it¡¯s expensive.Ironically, they expect a seafood gourmet every time theye, and I''m talking about the expensive kind.My mother-inw is the same when ites to beef. "Why should I pay for their meals? I didn¡¯t use the good stuff for lunch and kept it all in the fridge for tonight''s dinner.I want you and Zachary to enjoy a nice meal." Liberty only cooked a pot of pasta for her inws this afternoon and paid no heed to the nasty looks she got in return.It was a pleasant dinner for everybody though. After dinner, Zachary stayed for a little while before making a move. As his wife, Serenity had to leave with him too. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. With the couple gone, Liberty started clearing the dishes of her side of the family to wash in the kitchen. With the thought of serving dessert to his parents and sister, Hank swung by the fridge to take out the watermelon when he caught sight of the mess in the dining hall.He raised his voice, "Liberty, why haven''t you cleared the table? Get out here and clean up the ce." Instead of leaving her task at hand, Serenity replied from the kitchen, "You said we''re going halves.The groceries today make up for the money I used to get the clothes. We''re even on that front. "But we should do our part in the house so that it''s fair.I''ve cleared Serenity and her husbands, as well as my tes.The rest is yours and your family¡¯s.I don''t care whether you do it but you''ll have to use the same te tomorrow if you don''t clean it up." The Browns turned their gazes toward Hank. Mrs.Brown and Chelsea had suggested to Hank to go fifty-fifty with Liberty as Liberty was milking Hank dry. The women in Hank''s family felt the pinch in his wallet for his sake. Now that the couple started going Dutch, Liberty was expecting the same with household affairs. Seeing red, Hank grabbed a fruit knife and charged into the kitchen but his mother held him back. Chapter 78 Chapter 78 Chapter 78 N?velDrama.Org owns this. "Liberty, Hank has to go to work every day to earn for you and Sonny.His job can be busy and tiring.As his wife, you should be taking care of him.How can you leave the house chores to him? "Hank only mentioned going halves so you don¡¯t overspend the money.Why should you fuss about every little thing with your husband? Hurry up and clear the table.Don''t make Hank angry.It''s hard enough he has to bust his *ss out there, so show some understanding." Chelsea echoed her mom''s thoughts. "Yeah.As if you know what that feels like.All you do is take care of Sonny at home while spending Hank''s money.You have the cheek to order Hank around." Liberty left the kitchen and approached the children¡¯s toy motorbike to pick Sonny up. With a nk face, she replied, "I don''t have a job or a source of ie.I can only rely on Hank because I¡¯m a full-time mom.Yet, he expects me to pay for my half?! So, what is this? "Fine.I''ll pay my half, but he must do his share of house chores too.We''ll go halves in everything.Didn¡¯t you say I have it easy at home and that I don''t do anything? Well, you get your wish.I''m not going to do anything so Hank will know the house doesn''t clean itself.His dirty clothes and socks don¡¯t wash and fold themselves." Liberty held her son and grabbed her brother-inw¡¯s gifts before making a beeline into the bedroom.She mmed the door behind her. "She''s gone mad!" Livid, Hank banged the fruit knife on the coffee table and rolled up his sleeves with the intention to get into the bedroom and show Liberty who was boss. "Hank.Mrs.Brown pulled her son back. "What are you trying to do? Sonny is inside.Don''t scare Sonny.Wait until Sonny''s asleep before you teach her a lesson.Also, don''t beat her in visible ces.Serenity will go after you if she sees the bruises.We got to watch our backs with her husband." Hank was aware that Zachary worked in a major corporation, but the sisters never gave the name of thepany. Despite Hank''s attempts to befriend Zachary, thetter had always kept his distance from him. Hank was also a manager in hispany, so Zachary''s attitude put him off from ying nice. Following her mother¡¯s words, Hank started to think Zachary looked down on him. Flipping his top, he said, "Whatever happens between me and my wife is none of their business! What? Is Serenity going to hit me? Well, they should be the ones watching their backs!" Chelsea added fuel to the fire. "Hank, Mom''s right.Don¡¯t scare Sonny if you''re going to teach Liberty a lesson.You''ve been nothing but nice to Liberty, but that doesn¡¯t seem to be enough for her.I can¡¯t believe she expects you to handle the house chores.I always give my husband a nice foot rub when hees home from work. "While men work toward their career and bring home the bacon, women should be running the household smoothly.She''s not a good wife to make her husband do her work." On the surface, it seemed like Chelsea was calming her brother down, but she was only aggravating the situation. Chelsea hoped Hank would beat the living daylights out of Liberty right now. Since his son was young and his mother refused to let him go, Hank had to quit the thought of showing his authority to his wife for now. "She''ll get her punishment when Sonny goes to bed.All she does is eat and sleep all day.The pig had the nerve to give me an attitude! She expects me to do the dish?! Ha!" Hank picked up the fruit knife and sliced the watermelon. Mrs.Brown called her daughter to clean up the mess from dinner. The mother and daughter returned to the sofa a whileter and took a seat. Chelsea took a slice of watermelon to eat and said to her brother, "Hank, your niece and nephew are entering junior high.I was thinking of getting them into one of the schools here.Can they stay with you if I transfer them to an elementary school here for a year or two? It''ll be easier to enroll them to a junior high here after that." Chapter 79 Chapter 79 Chapter 79 Chelsea added, "Your ce is not too far from the school.I believe it''s in the catchment area. "Liberty can take care of the two kids, cook, and clean for them.The boarding expenses..." Hank interrupted her. "Chelsea, they are my niece and nephew.Forget the boarding expenses.I''ll get the kids transferred to the school here.Liberty will do the pickups and drop-offs.It¡¯s not like she has anything else to do anyway." Seeing that Hank did not hesitate to say yes, Chelsea and her husband were over the moon.Mrs.Brown pointed something out to her son. "Hank, you should discuss this with Liberty.She''s part of the family too." She then turned her attention to her daughter. "I heard the kids don¡¯t get an automatic cement for the junior highs here.The parents must live or own a property in the catchment area to get into local schools.Chelsea, it''s not like you''re living in the countryside.It''s suburban.The schools there aren''t too bad.You and your brothers studied there and got to college just fine." Mrs.Brown believed the location did not matter so long as the children did their due diligence studying. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. "Oh, this reminds me.Hank, how about I named you the parent of the kids or you can transfer the title deed to my name? Once the kids graduate, I''ll revert the guardianship to me or the house ownership to you." Mr.Repton held his son as he helped himself to some watermelon.He had noment on the matter. Hank was quick to sign off on it without a second thought. Nevertheless, he said, "I''ll let Liberty knowter.I call the shots in this family, but Moms tight.She''s part of this family.Besides, she has to send the kids to and from school, as well as cook for the kids.I''ll need to get her opinion on this. "I''ll call you once we reach a decision, Chelsea.Don''t worry.I want my niece and nephew to get into the best schools." Ah, the love between siblings. Hank had a lot of faith in his sister and was willing to help out as much as possible. Besides, his niece and nephews were not outsiders; they were family. Chelsea was tickled pink, to say the least. Switching to a lighter tone, she persuaded Hank, "Don''t be mad at Liberty.It''s normal for couples to have fights.You''ve been together and in love since college.For Sonny''s sake, just let it go." She was afraid that instigating a fight between the couple would steer Liberty away from cooking and ying chauffeur for her kids. That would foil Chelsea''s n in sending her kids to her brothers. Chelsea got to lie low when asking for a favor. Mr.Brown chimed in. "Hank, your sister''s right.Don''t go around talking about beating up your wife.Sit down and talk things out.Don''t take the violent route.Look at me and your mom.We''ve been married for years, but I''ve never laid a finger on your mom." Hank grumbled, "It''s because my mom is the best.Liberty can¡¯t bepared to mom.She''s getting worse by the day.She''s not contributing anything to the family and thinks she''s doing me a favor because she''s caring fora child.I only suggested going halves to save money because she''s spending money as if they grow on trees. In one day, she can spend half of the three thousand bucks I give her for monthly expenses! "Mom and Chelsea proposed the idea to me.If I don''t do that, Liberty won''t figure out a way to earn some money or understand the struggles.It''s a challenge to provide for the family.Yet, here she is, splitting the house chores with me.Well, she''s got another thinging." "She spent over a thousand in a day!? That''s excessive.You have a mortgage and child to think about.She could¡¯ve been a little more considerate since she¡¯s relying on you without an ie.Going halves sounds like a good idea.I''m not saying you shouldn''t do that to her." Mr.Brown took his son''s side immediately. "Desperate times call for desperate measures.She can take up a part-time job while caring for the child.But don''t keep talking about teaching her a lesson.Marriage is forever.It hasn''t been long since the wedding, and you''re already killing each other.How are you going to survive a lifetime?" Hank pursed his lips and said, "Got it, Dad.I''ll let her off the hook tonight then." Chapter 80 Chapter 80 Chapter 80 ¨C The family gathered together and enjoyed the watermelon in frontof the TV. Soon, the Browns retired to their rooms for the night. The Browns were sticking around for a few days. Now that Serenity had moved out, there was an extra room for the whole Brown family to stay. However, without Serenity helping around the house while Liberty took care of the child, groceries, and cooking, the house did not seem as clean as before. N?velDrama.Org owns this. Before retreating to bed, Chelsea discreetly pulled Hank to a corner and said, ¡°Serenity and her husband brought a lot of stuff tonight. Liberty was so angry she carried the bags into her room just now. I took a look inside the bags. There was some good stuff. ¡°I saw cigarettes and alcohol. Give some to your brother inw. Liberty doesn¡¯t smoke or drink. You also don¡¯t need the stuff anyway. Your brother ¨C inw can¡¯t bring himself to get the good cigarette brands. Ah, Dad hasn¡¯t tried that alcohol. Give the spirit to Dad.¡± Hank burst intoughter. ¡°Just take what you like, Chelsea. Give your baby a bath and get to bed. I¡¯m not workingte tomorrow so I will take all of you on a drive.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Beaming, Chelsea happily went to her room. Sonny was asleep by the time Hank entered his bedroom. As she was getting out of the shower, Liberty gave Hank the cold shoulder and satin her side of the bed to turn in for the night. ¡°There¡¯s something I need to discuss with you, Liberty.¡± Drawingparisons to Jessica¡¯s waistline, Hank stared at Liberty¡¯s fleshy figure in disgust. Hank drew close and took a seat by the bed. He caressed his son¡¯s face with tender eyes. Regardless of everything, Hank loved his son. ¡°What do you want?¡± Liberty¡¯s tone was t. ¡°My sister wants to send her eldest two to a school here. They¡¯ll be living at our ce. You¡¯ll help with the cooking, pickups, and drop-offs. You have to cook every day anyway, so what are a few extra mouths to feed? ¡°I¡¯ll add a thousand dors to your monthly allowance. The kids won¡¯t take up much of the expenses, so a thousand bucks is more than enough. ¡°We¡¯re in the catchment area for Wilt spoon Wood High. We can either take guardianship of Chelsea¡¯s kids or transfer the title deed to my sister¡¯s name. Once the kids have graduated, the housees back to my name. ¡°It¡¯s my sister we¡¯re talking about. We can trust her. There¡¯s no concern about her refusing to give back the house.¡± Liberty had kept her resentment bottled up inside the whole night. She was ready to put the matter behind her and saved herself from another fight with her husband, but Hank¡¯s words brought out the worst in her. Chapter 81 Chapter 81 Chapter 81 ¨C Liberty snapped back, ¡°Hank, I take care of our child all day, but you only see me as some useless person who only eats and spends money unnecessarily. I can take it because I want to give my son the best I can. ¡°But your sister¡¯s kids have nothing to do with me. They¡¯re not my responsibility. There¡¯s no way I¡¯m going to care for her kids! I can¡¯t believe you want guardianship of her children. The burden of providing for them and their education would fall on us. ¡°The title deed doesn¡¯t have my name, so it¡¯s your business if you want to transfer the ownership to your sister. It¡¯s also your problem if you can¡¯t get the house back. One thing though, you should return the renovation cost to me before you put her name on the deed. ¡°I won¡¯t be able to get my money back when the house bes hers.¡± A shadow of gloom loomed over Hank. ¡°I said I¡¯ll be giving you extra allowance. Isn¡¯t that enough? You¡¯re at home with a child anyway, so I don¡¯t see the big deal of adding another two. Kids over ten years old are hardly a handful. You can just tutor them on their homework. ¡°If you think a thousand bucks isn¡¯t enough, I¡¯ll put in another five hundred. You should be happy with a thousand and five hundred. ¡°So what if the burden of the kids¡¯ wellbeing and education falls on us? They¡¯re my sister¡¯s kids. It¡¯s the least we can do. I trust my sister. She will return the house to me. What do you mean by the renovation cost? I bought the house with my money. Shouldn¡¯t you contribute to the renovations since you¡¯re living here too? ¡°The audacity of yours to ask me to repay you for the renovation cost. Dream on!¡± Liberty red at her husband. Her heart sank to the pit of her stomach. The couple was in a long-term rtionship before tying the knot. Hank was the perfect boyfriend and husband up until two years into the marriage. Now, Hank had only been doing things that broke her heart. Hank only took his parents and sister¡¯s side. It was not just Liberty, but their son, Sonny, also took a back seat in Hank¡¯s life. Hank catered to Chelsea¡¯s every request. The issue of catchment areas had been a national dilemma that had caused many siblings to fall out. ¡°Hank, I¡¯m sticking to my guns on this. It¡¯s not a question of money. It¡¯s not my responsibility either. I¡¯m not taking care of your sister¡¯s kids for her, nor will I tutor them. If you¡¯re going down that route, you might as well pay me the wages of a tutor. ¡°I¡¯ll charge five thousand bucks for each kid every Month. That¡¯s ten thousand dors for both of them.Heck, I¡¯ll cook, do the pickups and drop-offs, and tutor for that price. Take it or leave it.That¡¯s a discount since she¡¯s your sister. I¡¯m very qualified to be a tutor, so I¡¯m worth the price.¡± Since it was all about the money, Liberty would y him at his own game! ¡°I won¡¯t agree to transfer the house to your sister¡¯s name until you repay me for the renovation cost. We can divorce if you go ahead anyway. I¡¯m still going to insist on getting the renovation money back as the divorce settlement.¡± Her name was never on the title deed because Hank bought the property before marriage. The Browns did not want to give her a cut of the house. After finding out that Liberty and Hank were going steady, the Browns quickly bought a house for Hank. Liberty was not entitled to the prenuptial property that did not have her name on it. Hank turned ck in the face. ¡°Five thousand bucks for each child? Why don¡¯t you just rob a bank? A divorce? Do you think you¡¯re only eighteen? You¡¯re married woman with a child and without a job. You¡¯re fat and ugly. Just a look at you makes people sick to their stomachs. How are you going to feed yourself after the divorce? ¡°Alright now. I need to think about this. Ten thousand is out of the question. The best I can do is three thousand bucks.¡± ¡°No deal!¡± Liberty bluntly rejected before turning over, refusing to continue discussing the subject with Hank.? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Chapter 82 Chapter 82 Chapter 82 ¨C Hank was livid and tempted to use force. To his surprise, Liberty suddenly turned around and looked at his raised hand. Liberty stared right into Hank¡¯s eyes with a deadpan look and said, ¡°You better kill me if you want to hit me. Otherwise, you can sleep with one eye open.¡± In the past, Liberty would endure Hank¡¯s verbal and physical abuse. It was all for the sake of the family, her son, and the love she had for her husband but Hank¡¯s insistence on going halves was thest straw. Since Liberty used to work in the samepany as Hank, she had a clear idea of Hank¡¯s sry as manager. It was tens of thousands a month. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Yet, Hank only gave her three thousand bucks and not a penny more for the household expenses. To top it off, he was making her pay for her own share, so of course she was disappointed. Now that she had been let down, Liberty did not want to be a pushover who revolved around Hank anymore. Hank better not sleep if he everid his hands on her again because she would go after him! Intimidated by the viciousness in Liberty¡¯s eyes,Hank loosened his fists at his wife¡¯s threat andshed out,¡± You¡¯re impossible.¡± He then took off. Liberty watched as the door shut. She had a lump in her throat and tears that would not stop rolling down her cheeks. Although Serenity was in the dark about the new disagreement between Liberty and Hank, something did not sit right with her even after she got home. Sitting on the balcony swing, Serenity gazed at the starry sky and was lost in her thoughts. Zachary brought Serenity a ss of water and said, ¡°The food was salty tonight.Rinse your mouth with water.¡± Lifting her head to look at him, Serenity took the ss from him. ¡°Thank you.¡± ¡°Something on your mind?¡± Zachary took a seat next to her. Serenity took a couple of sips and dwelled in silence before replying, ¡°I get the feeling that my sister is having itrough every day.I thought everything would be better after I moved out, but with that kind of in- They¡¯d probably gang up on my sister.¡± Liberty would not let anyone walk all over her, but the heart of the matter was that she loved Hank. She would give up a lot for love. ¡°Mr.York, I¡¯m lucky you don¡¯t have a problematic sister.Your family is very cultured. I could tell at the family event that your mom wasn¡¯t too happy with me, but she still treated me with respects Your family is very nice, and Nana¡¯s the nicest of them all. ¡°It¡¯s said that marriage is a woman¡¯s second chance at life. All women dream about their happy-ever-after, but even fairy tales have bad endings.¡± Their marriage was not built on the foundation of love. Although Zachary asked her to sign an agreement, he gave her everything and more. At least, he gave Serenity the well-deserved respect as a wife. Come to think of it, Zachary was way better than Hank. Of course, the couple had not been married for a long time. Serenity needed time to attest to Zachary¡¯s character. Zachary fell silent before uttering, ¡°You can let me know if Liberty¡¯s unhappy. We¡¯ll stand up for her and let the Browns know that we have her back!¡± Picking on Liberty was equivalent to picking on and disrespecting him too. The great Zachary York would never allow that to happen. Chapter 83 Chapter 83 Chapter 83 ¨C Tilting her head, Serenity stared at Zachary as he met her gaze. The couple looked into each other¡¯s eyes. A long whileter, Zachary flicked her forehead. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like that. Are you doubting the authenticity of my words? Serenity, we¡¯ll go to bat for your sister so long as she¡¯s in the right.¡± The York¡¯s held their family values in high regard. The husbands and wives had nothing but love for each other. Growing up, Zachary had never witnessed a case of domestic violence. Dad said that men who abused their wives were losers! ¡°Mr York.¡± ¡°Yes?¡± Serenity probed and asked, ¡°I want to lean on your shoulder.¡± Zachary hesitated ¡°Just for a while . I won¡¯t cross the line,¡± Serenity said while her head was a step ahead, leaning forward and finding its spot against his shoulder. Serenity could feel his body still ending. Although it was also a strange feeling to her, Serenity neededpanionship right now. It felt great to have a shoulder to lean on! tensed muscles to rx. It took a while for Zachary¡¯s Although he was not fond of the abrupt invasion of his space, Zachary did not push her away. The only thing was he did not know where to put his arms. His awkward cement amused her. Serenity suddenly reached out to touch his face. Zachary jolted away. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. It was a good thing Serenity braced herself for his reaction . Otherwise , she would have tumbled from the swing by his sudden flight. ¡°Serenity!¡± With a solemn face, Zachary said, ¡°Please keep our agreement in mind, and know your ce.¡± His weighty stance put Serenity in a good mood. Slumping against the seat, Serenity unhurriedly sipped on the ss of water while her bright eyes seemed to stare into Zachary¡¯s soul. For some reason, her gaze could make him blush. Perhaps rosiness had crept onto his face.He could feel the flush ¡°You¡¯re thirty now, Mr. York.Have you never been in such close contact with a woman? That¡¯s a pretty exaggerated response from me touching your face. People might think I did something to you,¡± Serenity teased. She thought to herself, ¡®Grandma York has her reason to push Zachary into marriage. Zachary would never find his other half without a push from the family. He would probably still be single when he hits eighty.¡¯ LI Nevertheless, it was fascinating to hit on him. A touch on his face brought about quite a huge reaction. What if she took it up a notch and kissed him? Zachary¡¯s stare could burn holes in her head. Serenity was in high spirits to start taking his re seriously. She responded with a smile, ¡°Do you want to touch my face to get even? You can do it twice as long.¡± Zachary winced. He had to admit that he behaved rather excessively over a brief skin contact. Zachary was overwhelmed by an unfamiliar feeling when she quietly rested against his shoulder. However, she caressed his face before he could read into his emotion. For a moment, Zachary thought she was going to take the intimacy one step further. Her teasing rubbed Zachary the wrong way, but his manners refrained him from engaging in the nonsense with her. All he could do was call her names in his mind¡¯ Cheeky girl! ¡°Do you feel better now?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°Yeah. Not bad. I feel a lot better than before.¡± Zachary ground his teeth and hissed through clenched teeth, ¡°You¡¯re taking pleasure in the pain of others.¡± ¡°Mr. York, that¡¯s a good use of hyperbole. Chapter 84 Chapter 84 Chapter 84 ¨C Zachary was speechless. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. He refused to budge from a stare-down before saying faintly, ¡°It¡¯ste. Get some early rest. Don¡¯t fall asleep here again. It¡¯s chilly at night. You¡¯ll feel the pain when you catch a cold.¡± Zachary then turned on his heel and left. Soon, Serenity picked up on his door closing and locking. Serenity murmured with glee, ¡°Who is he trying to keep out by locking the door?¡± It was her who Zachary was trying to keep out! Back in his room, Zachary went straight to the bathroom, but not for a bath. He stood in front of the mirror and stared at his reflection. Judging by the faint blush, he did turn red on the face. Lifting his hand, he traced his facial lines and rubbed the spot Serenity touched while searching for the tingles he got back when her fingers ran along his face. He turned on the tap and washed his face. Thinking back on his reaction, Zachary smiled and mumbled to himself, ¡°I¡¯ve never let anyone touch my face for as long as I can remember.¡± Now that he had reached adulthood , his stern and aloof personality warded anyone off from invading his personal space. Besides, it was hard for young women to approach Zachary through his wall of bodyguards. There was no chance anyone could throw themselves at him or take liberties with Zachary. Despite the imprable defense , Zachary dropped the ball on that one woman at home. Serenity defiled the innocence of his face. Yet, she was his legal wife. It was not like he could do anything to her after she vited his face. Plus, his response was ridiculed in return. Zachary took his time in the shower. Reminded by the woman on the balcony, he opened his bedroom door and put his foot forward before shrinking back into the room. He was giving the cheeky girl a free peep show if he were to walk out bare-chested without his dressing gown on. A few minutester, Zachary confidently took strides out of the room after he put on his dressing gown and tucked everything under, making sure nothing was showing. He went to the balcony to check on the woman. Well, he might catch her asleep on the swing. As expected, the girl had dozed off there. Zachary was caught between emotions, especially after he told her not to fall asleep there. With a kick to the swing, the seat jerked into the air and startled the woman awake. ¡°Mr. York? Is it morning already?¡± Staring into her bleary eyes, Zachary was tempted to give hear boogie. ¡°You fell asleep here. Get up and return to your room. I told you off about this, yet here you are. You could¡¯ve told me you wanted to feed the mosquitos and I would¡¯ve moved your bed to the greenery. ¡±be mean, but behind all that tough exterior is a softie.¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. ¡°Oh.¡± Serenity got to her feet and murmured, ¡°You might one had ever called him a softie. gued by sleepiness, Serenity retreated to her room without another peep. She took a quick shower and conked out. It was a quiet night all the way through. The following day, Zachary woke up to breakfast served on the table. His wife was watering the nts on the balcony. He went out there. ¡°Morning, Mr.York.¡± Serenity greeted him with a grin. Zachary hummed in response. Serenity went back to pouring water over the nts. The roses were blooming today. ¡°It will be beautiful when the roses climb all over the balcony and blossom.¡± Zachary¡¯s mindharked back to the rose garden at the gate of the Yorks¡¯ estate. It was breathtaking when flowers bloomed, but he never stopped to smell the roses, probably because he had seen them one too many times. Although the family¡¯s greenhouse enjoyed a variety of roses, Zachary rarely had time to appreciate the beauty. Chapter 85 Chapter 85 Chapter 85 ¨C Feasting his eyes on the balcony garden, Zachary uttered faintly, ¡°You can grow the whole yard with roses when we move into a bungalow. When they grow and climb the walls, the full bloom is a sight to behold.¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°The price of properties has skyrocketed to an alltime high.I can¡¯t even scrape together the deposit for a studio apartment, let alone a bungalow.¡± Of course, Serenity had considered getting a bungalow¡­in her dreams. Anyone would¡¯ve wanted to live in a bungalow if they had the means to do so. Privacy was guaranteed in the standalone building. An apartment was not exactly the perfect sanctuary as the walls were not thick enough to soundproof from upstairs and downstairs. Zachary held his tongue. The ce they were staying now was ast-minute purchase before their marriage.He had been staying in a huge mansion prior to this. ¡°Mr.York, get some breakfast.I¡¯ll join you after I¡¯m done watering the flowers.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Zachary turned around and ventured into the dining hall. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Breakfasts by Chef Serenity might be simple, but she always changed up the recipes to make things interesting . Serenity was a great cook who could make toast and homemade jam taste good. Zachary believed his pte was overwhelmed by all the best gourmets in the world. That was why he found Serenity¡¯s simple andmon dishes delicious. Zachary was the first one out the door today. He ran into Josh in the office building. Josh blinked at Zachary. Zachary kept a nk face. ¡°Why do you look hot and bothered?¡± Walking alongside Zachary, Josh nudged him and poked fun in a hushed tone, ¡°What? Can¡¯t please yourdy?¡± Zachary turned his head and gave Josh the evil eye before making his way to his office. ¡°Knowing you, you couldn¡¯t and didn¡¯t.¡± ¡°We¡¯re good!¡± Zachary retorted peevishly. ¡°Oh.¡± Josh proceeded to pry into Zachary¡¯s affairs. ¡°Why do you look like you didn¡¯t get enoughst night then?¡± ¡°And how can you tell?¡± How could Zachary have that look when he had never experienced a hot and tantalizing night? Besides, Serenity did not make his heart race, nor did he get the animalistic urge when he was with her. With that in mind, Zachary had to admit that he was detached in the emotions department. ¡°I saw it with my two eyes.Anyway, Zachary, I ordered breakfast.Have you eaten? Come join me.¡± Zachary turned his head to face his friend again. He pursed his lips before saying, ¡°I have a wife.I get out of bed to have breakfast ready on the table.Only those who are single would order breakfast in the office.¡± Josh was stumped. Zachary¡¯s marriage sure gave him bragging rights. He was suddenly curious as to how Zachary got along with Serenity ¡°How¡¯s the progress with your investigation ? Send the file to my officeter.¡± Josh answered with a grin, ¡°You know you can count on me. I¡¯ll have it delivered to your office right away.¡¯ ¡°Good,¡± Zachary responded. With the pair splitting up, Zachary took his personal elevator to the top floor. Since Josh¡¯s office was not on the top floor, he could not be bothered to share the elevator with his stone ¨C faced boss. Josh was a hard-shell figure in the office too, but he was popr among his peers because unlike Zachary, he was not a walking wax sculpture . As Zachary¡¯s trusted man, Josh was the go-to person when the employees needed to get a message to Zachary. Zachary had just stepped into his office when Josh came in with his breakfast delivery. Chapter 86 Chapter 86 Chapter 86 ¨C Josh was holding a small stack of paper which could easily be mistaken for office documents. ¡°Here you go.¡± After slipping the papers to Zachary across his desk, Josh took a seat and put his breakfast on the table. He asked his boss, ¡°Do you want some? I got my food delivered from the Wilt spoon Hotel. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. It¡¯s delicious.¡± Since Wilt spoon Hotel operated under York Corporation, Zachary usually grabbed his breakfast, lunch, and dinner there. Now that Zachary had a wife, it had been a while since Josh dined with his boss. Josh kind of missed those moments. ¡°I¡¯m good.¡± Picking up the file, Zachary flipped through and asked,¡± Is everything here?¡± ¡°Yeah.It¡¯s all there.No stone is left unturned.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not a lot.¡± ¡°The younger members of the family have it pretty good while the seniors spent their lives on the farm. What more can there be?¡± Zachary was without a word. As mentioned by Josh, there was nothing much to write about the seniors, albeit the info on the younger family members did take up a few pages. Josh included age, marital status, and number of children in each rtive¡¯s profile to upy more pages in the file. Having read the file, Zachary had a deeper understanding of the family¡¯s insolence and brazenness. Serenity¡¯s cousins and uncles made quite a good living. John Hunt worked in a subsidiary of Stone Group as an executive, earning himself an annual ie of a million. The least sessful cousin enjoyed a nice annual wage of four hundred thousand bucks. Serenity and her sister probably did not earn that much altogether. The rtives had the nerve to demand Serenity to foot her grandmother¡¯s medical bills and their gas for traveling It was utter shamelessness on a whole new level! The rtives walked away aggressively with a huge chunk of the insurance payout, taking advantage of the underaged sisters who lost their parents so suddenly. Now, they were making Serenity pay for the medical bills. Zachary was aware that all kinds of people existed in the world, but he had nevere across those without a hint ofpassion like her rtives. Caught in the moment, Zachary felt sorry for Serenity. ¡°Why do you look upset? Did they do something to your missus? Do you want me to teach them a lesson?¡± Zachary callously responded, ¡°My wife¡¯s affairs are not your problem.¡± Josh blinked his eyes. He sensed jealousy in Zachary¡¯s tone, but it could be all in his head. ¡°I mean no harm. I thought you might want a little help since you¡¯re busy. Say the word, and I¡¯ll get it done.¡± ¡°Just hold.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Josh blinked again. By that, Zachary was not asking Josh to hold for his orders, but to lie low until the Hunts made a move. He could only return fire once heid eyes from whence the direction of the attack. Mike, the oldest grandson of the Hunts, was acquainted with people in the press. Zachary had a feeling that Mike was likely going to pull the sisters into a media shh*storm as form of emotional ckmail. ¡°Boss.¡± ¡°Speak.¡± ¡°What did your missus make for breakfast today?¡± Josh asked nosily. ¡°Don¡¯t give me that look. I¡¯m just curious how you two are getting along. Besides, the marriage happened all of a sudden. It¡¯s not like you married for love. Oh, and you didn¡¯t make your marriage public either. ¡°Would you say hello to your wife if you bump into her on the streets? Or would you y dumb?¡± Zachary blurted coldly, ¡°Why don¡¯t you just go back to eating your breakfast?¡± Josh chuckled. Fine. Zachary could have it his way. Chapter 87 Chapter 87 Chapter 87 ¨C Ring, ring, ring¡­ The office phone was ringing. Zachary epted the call and put it on loudspeaker. ¡°Mr. York, Ms. Stone is here again.¡± With his face falling, Zachary uttered in a t tone,¡° Ignore her.¡± The secretary replied, ¡°Ms. Stone ordered a truck of flowers to be arranged into a heart shape and delivered to the entrance of our building. Apparently, the heart represents her love for you.¡± Josh¡¯s eyes on his boss were sparkling with gossip. Zachary looked askance at Josh before retorting, ¡°What¡¯s the security here for? Why are they allowing trash at our doorstep?¡± He then terminated the call. The secretary got the message loud and clear. Josh chuckled. ¡°Elisa is a great girl.She¡¯s forting with her feelings. I mean, the number of women who have a thing for you has got to be as many as the hair on my head, but only Elisa has the guts to profess her love and prove it with her actions.¡± ¡°Go for her then if you think she¡¯s great. Get her to give you all the attention, so I can have my peace again.¡± Josh choked. ¡°She¡¯s not my type.¡± Josh gave an excuse as he was picky about finding his soulmate. It was all about sparks and butterflies. Without that flighty feeling in the stomach, Josh could not fall for the woman no matter how pretty she could be. ¡°Zachary, are you nning to spend the rest of your life with Serenity?¡± ¡°What does it have to do with you?¡± Josh was choked for words once more. ¡°You¡¯re goofing around onpany hours.Finish your food and get out.If you have nothing to do¡­¡± ¡°I¡¯m busy. I have a lot of work. I¡¯ll get right back to it now.¡± Terrified by the prospect of increased workload, Josh cut Zachary off and took mouthfuls of his breakfast before packing up and getting out of there. Josh waited until he was out of the office before mumbling, ¡°I wasn¡¯t being nosy. I was just concerned. That¡¯s all.¡± So much for being nice, One innocent question almost cost Josh extra work. His boss was bound to overwork him to death. Although Josh had left, he was not ready to give up on good gossip. Josh told his secretary to take photos of Elisa¡¯s beautiful disy of flowers so he could use it to make fun of Zachary every now and then. Besides, he could learn a thing or two from Elisa¡¯s bold pursuits of love and emte her when he were to meet the one. The symbolic disy of flowers representing Elisa¡¯s love had just been arranged. The sea of red was a beautiful sight. The security guards on duty got the orders from the top to destroy Elisa¡¯s heart-shaped flower disy. However, they could not bring themselves to do it when they arrived at the floral art piece. Holding a megaphone , Elisa shouted at the sixty-eight story building. ¡°Zachary, I like you!¡± Everybody at York Corporation was amazed by Ms. Stone¡¯s bad*ss stunt. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. ¡°Ms. Stone, please leave now.¡± A security guard on duty intervened. Ignoring the security guard, Elisa yelled and hollered at the office building After taking the first step, Elisa had no qualms cranking up the pace. Her promation of love and floral arrangement at the entrance of York Corporation quickly caught the eye of passers-by. A growing crowd formed to stop and take photos and videos. The media even caught wind and dropped by.It was a pity that the flowers were destroyed and removed by the time the media arrived. However, Elisa stayed on as the security dared noty their hands on her. Chapter 88 Chapter 88 Chapter 88 ¨C Elisa was the heiress of the Stones after all. The Stones and Yorks might not get along, so the security guards¡¯ inhospitality toward Elisa could aggravate the hostility between both giants. It was not a responsibility the security guards could shoulder. Soon, a few speeding cars pulled up in front of York Corporation. Getting out of the car, Clive took quick strides toward his sister who was yelling out all the love she had for Zachary through a megaphone. The scowl on his handsome face did not go amiss. There was no question that Zachary called Clive again to make a fuss about his sister¡¯s antics. Clive happened to be in a meeting when he received theint. Frustration could barely describe Clive¡¯s emotions right now. Ditching his team of executives, Clive took his bodyguard and came all the way to draggles back. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± Before Elisa could finish, the megaphone was snatched right out of her hands. She looked over and met the stern eyes of her brother. Dumbstruck, Elisa cowered and cried timidly, ¡°Clive.¡± Clive tossed the megaphone aside before grabbing Elisa by the wrist and dragged her along. ¡°Clive , I like Zachary. I really do. I have had a crush on him for many years, and it¡¯s taken me until now to confess. You need to let me do this. What if he falls in love with me too? Ouch, Clive. You¡¯re grabbing me too hard!¡± Without a word, Clive hauled his sister to the car and pulled the door open to stuff her inside. Elisa tried to get out from the other side of the vehicle. ¡°Take one more step.¡± Getting cold feet, Elisa lost the will to run and stayed put. Clive got into the car, shut the door, and ordered emotionlessly, ¡°Drive.¡± The driver stepped on the gas. ¡°Clive¨C¡± Elisa snuggled up to her brother while holding his arm as she appealed to his soft spot. ¡°Shut up!¡± Clive chided. ¡°I have told you a hundred times that Zachary¡¯s not a good match for you. You should give up but you won¡¯t listen to me, huh?¡± ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. ¡°I wanted to get over him, but the years didn¡¯t help me to move on.I can¡¯t give up now.I love him.Am I wrong to show it? How would we know the oue if you don¡¯t let me try and fight for it?¡±. Loved by her family, Elisa came from a line of wealth and power that gave her the confidence to face life. She would do what no one had the guts to do. Regardless of herpatibility with Zachary, Elisa believed she should give it a go. She was willing to ept failure for trying as giving up without a fight would always remains regret. ¡°It¡¯s not like you don¡¯t know Zachary.You can¡¯t even get within three meters from him!¡± ¡°He hasn¡¯t fallen for me yet. I¡¯m sure he¡¯ll make an exception for me once he¡¯s smitten.¡± Clive smirked as he stared at his sister who would stop at nothing until she had taken a crack at it. He was furious, helpless, and sorry for his sister to have fallen head over heels for Zachary. ¡°Elisa, I know a lot of fine men. Listen to me. Get Zachary out of your head. He¡¯s not good for you. Heck, the man¡¯s heart is made from iron. No woman can melt his cold heart. Even if someone can, that person won¡¯t be you. ¡°Don¡¯t make yourself aughingstock.You¡¯re not just embarrassing yourself, but me too.¡± ¡°What do you mean embarrassing? I¡¯m only being truthful with my feelings. You should be familiar with the tricks. Didn¡¯t your wife adopt the same method to score your heart? You only have eyes for her now. See, there¡¯s nothing embarrassing about a woman going after a man.¡± Clive was left speechless. It sounded about right. His dear wife had always been direct with her feelings. His wife pulled out all the stops when she pursued him. Chapter 89 Chapter 89 Chapter 89 ¨C Back in the bookshop near Wilt spoon School, Serenity sat behind the cash register, scrolling on her phone reading news while Jasmine was lost in a romance book. As the owner of a bookshop, Jasmine had free rein to explore all the books she wanted. That was the perk for doing what she loved for a living. Jasmine had read almost all the romance novels in the shop. At times, Serenity would tease by asking Jasmine to be a writer since she had always enjoyed a good chick lit. ¡°Seren, the main characters of this story got married at first sight too.¡± As she put down the book, Jasmine added with a smile,¡± Just like you.¡± Serenity was fixated on Jasmine. ¡°Lots of people got married after dating shortly. Well, you did say that the female character of that book blindly married a billionaire. My husband is only a wage earner.¡± Even though Zachary was a senior white-cor worker in a major group, he was working for someone. ¡°You might want to cut down on reading. I think the stories are getting way over your head. You¡¯ll never find Mr. Right because you¡¯dpare the male leads to the men you meet in real life. The irresistible men in your books only exist in fiction.¡± Rarely were there young, attractive, wealthy, and devoted CEOs in real life. ¡°I¡¯m just passing time with these books.I don¡¯t have a knack for crafting like you.¡± Closing her book, Jasmine pulled out her phone and scrolled for any interesting news. Her general preference was tabloid. She visited her favorite site and checked the trending updates of the day. With one article piquing Jasmine¡¯s interest, she eximed, ¡°Siren, check out Twitter.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the big news?¡± Serenity spared her a nce but nothing more. She had a Twitter ount, but she rarely managed it as her number of followers were only in the double digits. asionally, she would tweet about her crafts since her followers were loyal customers. ¡°Someone dered their love to the heir of the York¡¯s¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Serenity was not the least bit intrigued. The way she saw it was that she would never cross paths with the big man of the York family. Why would she waste time on a figure who yed no part in her life? ¡°I heard that the heir¡¯s not short of admirers. I mean, he¡¯s the heir to and CEO of York Corporation. Marrying him is basically marrying into wealth and power. ¡°The woman must be a certain somebody to pull such a bold stunt to make a pass at the heir. Do you want to guess who she is, Siren?¡± ¡°It¡¯s neither you nor me for sure.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. That shut Jasmine up. Jasmine whined, ¡°Why aren¡¯t you intrigued by the hottest gossip of the year? ¡°It¡¯s the sister of Stone Group¡¯s CEO. His only sister. Stone Group¡¯s only second to York Corporation in Wilt spoon. However, the two giants don¡¯t seem to be on good terms. I can¡¯t believe Elisa has a thing for young Mr. York. I admire Elisa¡¯s bravery and confidence to profess her feelings and go after the man!¡± Serenity put a damper on her spirits. ¡°We were talking about Mr. York swinging the other way thest time. Ms. Stone won¡¯t have her feelings reciprocated. We could probably see a more optimistic result if Mr.Stone went after him instead.¡± Jasmine was lost for words. Mr. Stone was married, and the wedding stirred a TL sensation in the Wilt spoonmunity. The couple was very much in love. Mr. Stone made a name for himself in Wilt spoon as someone who would give his wife everything Chapter 90 Chapter 90 Chapter 90 ¨C ¡°It would be a shame for Ms. Stone if Mr. York ys for the other team.¡± Jasmine added regrettably, ¡°That would be a disappointing result now that someone had the prowess to woo Mr.York. Speaking of which, do you think the heir swings the other way?¡± Serenity replied amusedly, ¡°How would I know?¡± It was only their suspicion, but of course, Mr. York¡¯s sexual orientation would be determined should he ept and marry Ms. Stone. Nevertheless, what did it have to do with Serenity? The hottest gossip, even if it was about Mr. York, was not worthy of Serenity¡¯s time. Jasmine, however, loved getting into it. Every so often, Jasmine would babble about local big stories within Serenity¡¯s earshot. Refusing to engage in gossip, Serenity took out her tools to get into her crafting. N?velDrama.Org owns this. Jasmine rambled on under her breath while checking out the trending news. She was reading an article when her expression slowly turned grave. Not too longter, she mmed hard on the cash register. The loud smack startled Serenity. ¡°What was that about, Jasmine? You scared me.¡± ¡°D*mn it! This is outrageous!¡± Seething with rage, Jasmine got up and passed her phone to Serenity. Jasmine uttered furiously, ¡°Seren, is this article about you and Liberty? Your names and a photo are on the news. The two girls in the photo look like you and Liberty. ¡°It¡¯s written that all you and your sister only ever cared about are yourselves without regard for your family, and that you turn your back to your sick grandmother. Apparently, you never visited your family for over ten years, and now the olddy is sick because she misses her granddaughters dearly.¡± Serenity got a bad feeling about it. She swiftly took the phone from Jasmine and read the trending story. A photograph of a younger version of herself and her sister was also tweeted. The article really riled Serenity up. Needless to say, someone among the rtives posted the tweet, but there was no telling which cousin it was. The tweet disclosed her personal information such as name, photo, and personal mobile number. The sisters were published as viins, shunning the family after the grandparents tried to make ends meet to raise the sisters and afford their education. Yet, the kindness and love were repaid by years of absence. Now that the grandmother was critically ill and wished to meet the granddaughters by her deathbed, the sisters refused to even turn up at the hospital. It was such a believable lie. At the very end of the tweet, the poster appealed to theizens to contact Serenity and Liberty so the sisters would rush to Wilt spoon General Hospital to visit the grandmother for a final goodbye. Serenity¡¯s hands were shaking by the time she got to the end of the article. It never urred to her that these People would be so shameless to smear her and Liberty¡¯s names online. The sisters went viral, probably because it was paid content. The purpose was to drag the sisters¡¯ names through the mud. Although Serenity and Liberty were ordinary people, the tweet put the sisters in the forefront of abuse by keyboard warriors. Fueled by a pretentious sense of righteousness, these keyboard warriors hid behind online anonymity, skinning the sisters alive and tearing into them without getting to the truth of the matter. The sisters would be exposed to cyberbullying! Fifteen years had passed, but Serenity¡¯s rtives were just as brazen and ruthless as before. They jumped on Serenity and Liberty without mercy and consideration that the were family! These rtives sure went the whole nine yards to make Serenity pay for the old hag¡¯s medical treatment! ¡°Are you okay, Seren?¡± Jasmine was worried as her best friend was burning in hatred. Keeping to herself, Serenity scrolled through thements. Judging by the meanments about them sisters, the rtives must have spent a lot of money on trolls. Chapter 91 Chapter 91 Chapter 91 ¨C Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. Picking up the phone for a look, Serenity saw that it was her sister and took the call. ¡°Seren, did you see the news on Twitter? They¡¯re too much!¡± Liberty was up in arms. As she was fifteen when their parents died in the ident, Liberty had a clearer memory of the events that followed. Liberty kept a diary of every detail of their grandparents and uncles¡¯ heartless deeds. She still had the diary in possession. It never urred to Liberty that these rtives would do a one- eighty and point finger at the sisters. ¡°It¡¯s not like they turned bad overnight. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. They have always been evil.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go online now to exin our side of the story.¡± Liberty was about to hang up when Serenity stopped her. ¡°No need to jump to our defense. Let the story sit for a while before we respond. Then, it¡¯s our turn to show the whole world who they are. ¡°Since they put our faces and numbers online, we should do our homework and stick the evidence in their faces.¡± ¡°What do you n to do, Siren? You have my full support. That reminds me, I had the habit of keeping a diary back then and I still have it. I remember everything they did to us. How about we post the diary online?¡± Surprised that Liberty kept a diary, Serenity replied, ¡± Send the diary to me, Liberty. I¡¯llpile the proof we need to fight back. I¡¯ll post a long tweet together with the evidence and make them regret for putting us in this spot.¡± Did the rtives think the online attack and cyberbullying would intimidate her from going down without a fight? ¡°Alright.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t get involved, Liberty. I¡¯ll handle it. You have Sonny. These trolls can be ruthless to go after you and your son. Don¡¯t go online in the next few days. Turn off your phone or change your number. We can stay in touch with your new contact number.¡± Liberty was reluctant. ¡°This involves us both. How can I let you face it alone?¡± ¡°I know you¡¯re not scared, but you have a son to protect. He¡¯s young. God knows if these people would harm your family.¡± Cyberbullying could go as far as harassing the family. Serenity was mainly concerned about her young nephew getting dragged into this. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Liberty. I¡¯ll sort it out. Remove your SIM card and contact me when you get a new number.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Liberty responded, ¡°I¡¯ll head to your shop right now.¡± Although Liberty agreed to get a new SIM card, she was not going to stay out of the matter. After the sisters ended the call, Liberty received a call from her husband. Hank yelled at her through the phone, ¡°Is the article online tweeted by your rtives? I told you to cut ties with them. I don¡¯t care what happens to you, but don¡¯t get me and Sonny involved.¡± Now that Hank had climbed his way to a managerial position, his ie was a lot more than what it used to be. Those bloodsuckers would try to milk him dry if they were to find out about it. Chapter 92 Chapter 92 Chapter 92 ¨C With her husband blowing up on her, Liberty was furious and disconcerted. She snapped back. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t get you involved. After what I did to my rtives, I had no intention of staying in touch with them. They¡¯re the ones who won¡¯t leave me and my sister alone. They want me and Serenity to pay for Grandma¡¯s medical bills.¡± Realizing that he might havee out harsh, Hank toned it down. ¡°Liberty , you can write a tweet to clear the air. I¡¯ll pay for professional trolling to hype your post. You must refute their ims. Don¡¯t let them twist the story around.¡± Although Hank was disgusted by Liberty¡¯s presence, he had to admit that her rtives loved to spin stories far from the truth. When he and Liberty got hitched, these rtives filled two cars and intimidated Hank with great numbers to fork out a lump sum of family support. Otherwise, they would not see the marriage through. Hank and Liberty were college sweethearts , so he knew the sisters had it roughing this far in life. Over the years, Liberty had never once badmouthed the rtives. Although she despised them, she was not one to air her dirtyundry. However, as if the hurt from fifteen years ago was not enough, these rtives had the nerve to demand more money from him.It was outrageous. Liberty drove them out of there and did not invite them to the wedding, refusing to give them even a dime. In Liberty¡¯s words, she was not indebted to her rtives since they never raised her. Although Liberty weed them to the wedding to celebrate the joyous asion, they could forget it if they were herefor something else. They had no say over her marriage. Liberty became an independent woman and took guardianship of her sister after their parents¡¯ death. ¡°Siren and I will deal with this. Don¡¯t worry. You won¡¯t be caught in the crossfire. Worstes to worst, we can divorce if they find you and ask you for money. This way, they won¡¯te after you since you¡¯d have nothing to do with me.¡± Hank immediately replied, ¡°What are you saying, Liberty? What divorce? I was just worried about Sonny.¡± Divorce was in the cards for Hank, but his son was still young. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Reading the disappointment in her Even if Hank got custody of the kid, who was going to take care of Sonny? He would proceed with the divorce once Sonny was older and no longer needed to be tended to. Jessica often brought up that she would never be a mistress who could only hide in the shadows. Hank should divorce Liberty and be with her if he really loved her. With Jessica having Hank wrapped around her little fingers, Hank was subservient to her every wish. While Hank went halves on everything with Liberty and refused to contribute more to living expenses, he was generous with Jessica. Hank had a dinner date with Jessica tonight at a five-star hotel. ¡°Alright then. I better get back to work. Call me if you need me.¡± Hank put down the phone before Liberty could say anything A contrast to Hank¡¯s eagerness to dissociate himself from the scandal, Zachary was a lot more thoughtful. Zachary had no time to catch up on thetest gossip. Josh, however, told his secretary to keep an eye out after he was tasked with investigating the Hunts. His secretary happened toe across the Hunt sisters¡¯ scandal when she was checking out the viral tweet about her CEO. She immediately reported the matter to Josh. Josh called his boss right away to update him about the news. Zachary had noticed Mike¡¯s connection to the press when going through the file on the Hunts. He predicted that the rtives might turn the onlinemunity against Serenity to get an edge. Needless to say, he was right. Instead of calling Serenity, Zachary left his work at hand to his people and drove straight to Serenity. Serenity was surrounded by neighbors by the time he got to the shop. They did not jump on her, but rather just inquired whether the story online was true. Chapter 93 Chapter 93 Chapter 93 ¨C ¡°We¡¯ve been operating on business on this street for years now. You all know what Siren¡¯s like. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Whatever that¡¯s written online is bullish*t.¡± Serenity did not say much to defend herself. It was Jasmine, who could not stand people getting the wrong message about her best friend, sticking up for Serenity. Jasmine spilled the beans on the sisters¡¯ hardship while they were in the hands of the Hunts. It was a tell-all ount that included thetest fiasco of the rtives demanding Serenity to foot the grandmother¡¯s medical bill and cover the cousins¡¯ gas and whatnot after the grandmother had fallen ill. Everybody had borne witness to Serenity¡¯s Even the other booksellers down the street, despite the competition among businesses, believed Serenity was not that kind of girl. Now that they got the whole story, everybody was fired up to put the truth across to theizens. The Hunts should not get away with this. Now that was a low blow even for the Hunts. They were stepping on Serenity and her sister because their parents were not around. Spotting Zachary, Jasmine elbowed Serenity who was scribbling something off the notepad. Since the whole debacle took off, Serenity did not turn off her phone or change her number. However, she only took calls from friends and rejected unknown numbers. The demeaning text messages thatizens bombarded her phone with were left unread. Calm and collected, Serenity wrote a retaliation strategy down on the paper. ¡°Your man¡¯s here, Seren. ¡± Jasmine was really liking Zachary now. He rushed to Serenity¡¯s side in her time of need. Even though they married in a haste, Zachary took upon the role of a husband. Serenity lifted her chin as Zachary took steady paces over. Zachary quickly stood before her desk. Jasmine gave them some space. Zachary first assessed Serenity¡¯s emotional state. He was at ease to find her level-headed. With his eyes drawn to the paper at the cash register, he picked it up for a look. His eyes reflectedmendation by the time he shifted his gaze back to her. ¡°What brings you here?¡± Serenity asked. To be frank, Serenity was swallowed into a warm embrace when Zachary stepped into the room. He told her before that he would have her back. Zachary was true to his words. He came over the moment she was in trouble. ¡°I was worried, so I came to check on you.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was husky. ¡°I can rx now seeing that you¡¯re coping well.¡± ¡°Did you take time off? Would that affect your work attendance?¡± Zachary¡¯s attendance at work seemed to be more of a concern to Serenity than her own situation. Attendance must be crucial at a major corporation. Serenity would feel bad if her issue got in the way of his work as that was thest thing she wanted. Zachary said faintly, ¡°I¡¯ve been with thepany for many years, so being a senior has its perks. Don¡¯t worry about my job. What¡¯s taking a few hours off just to see if you¡¯re okay? ¡°Come on. Chapter 94 Chapter 94 Chapter 94 ¨C Serenity fell into contemtion before agreeing to let Zacharye with. Walking around the cash register, Serenity told her best friend, ¡°I¡¯m heading out for a while, Jasmine. I¡¯ll leave the shop in your hands. Reassure my sister that everything¡¯s going to be okay when shees over. I¡¯ll sort things out.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± After telling her best friend to be safe, Jasmine watched as Serenity and Zachary took off. Sitting in Zachary¡¯s car, Serenity asked him, ¡°Mr.York, do you know anyone in the media?¡± ¡°Yes. Do you need their help with something?¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I¡¯m going back to my hometown to take photos of my uncles¡¯ houses. It¡¯ll be more convincing with a third party validating it. I still don¡¯t know what my rtives do for a living.¡± Her grandparents were still hogging her family home too. Serenity intended to snap photos of their living conditions. A visual proof was crucial to disapprove their ims. As for the public witch hunt online, Serenity was not going to go into that for now. She should let sparks fly for a moment. With online trolls taking the lead, theizens tore into the sisters like never before. Once the finger-pointing was reversed , theizens would realize they were used and unleash their fury on the Hunts. Serenity was only paying back an eye for an eye. ¡°I got some friends to dig into your rtives¡¯ jobs and ies.You can write about what happened once you get pictures of their houses. I can find someone to write for you if you need help in that department.¡± ¡°Thank you.That won¡¯t be necessary because I won¡¯t be posting a tweet. My sister had the habit of keeping a diary and ounting for what happened. She still has the diary, so I¡¯m going to take photos of her entries to put online for everyone to see. ¡°My grandparents signed a contract with us when they took a share of the insurance money. There are three copies of the contract.The town council and my rtives each hold a copy while my sister and I have one. I¡¯ll share the contract on the web too. ¡°The truth will prevail and justice will be served.¡± Serenity was completely unfazed. ¡°It¡¯ll be more convincing if the town council tweets their copy.¡± ¡°My sister and I have been away for a long time. The town council won¡¯t help me, considering we don¡¯t live there. Granddad mentioned that John is doing well for himself and earns an annual ie of a million.The whole town is one big family. I¡¯m sure the town council will be on their side since they¡¯re affluent there.¡± Zachary quietly navigated the road. He knew Serenity had a point. ¡°My sister¡¯s diary and the contract in our possession should be enough.¡± Zachary remained silent. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. He decided to wait until he got to a rest area to give Josh a call. He needed Josh to get the community¡¯s seniors and the people from back then to speak up for Serenity. Josh was more than capable of making it happen without being there. Poor Josh would be speechless to hear about this. However, it was not an overkill to get Josh involved as Zachary was more wellversed in the dark nature of human beings than Serenity. The evidence Serenity intended to provide could very well be used against her. It was hard for the sisters to walk away from the scandal should the Hunts question the authenticity of the contract. The key for the sisters to turn the tide was to get the insiders to speak up and prove the Hunts did Liberty and Serenity dirty. The few people from the media who adopted Mike¡¯s story could expect to be banned from journalism forever! Those whoid hands on his woman were challenging his authority. Zachary was not going to let these people who twisted stories and ndered the innocent walk free. ¡°Thank you, Mr. York.¡± Serenity had no idea the man beside her nned to unleash his wrath on the people involved. She was just grateful that Zachary was here for her during her most vulnerable time. Zachary uttered solemnly, ¡°We¡¯re husband and wife.¡± Chapter 95 Chapter 95 Chapter 95 ¨C Caught off guard by the response, Serenity ensued with a smile. ¡°Many couples break up in the face of adversity. We got married without knowing anything about each other and have only lived together for two weeks. I¡¯m grateful that you¡¯re willing to face this together with me.¡± in the scandal if not handled well. The people around her might be embroiled ¡°My sister and brother-inw were college sweethearts and had been dating for years before tying the knot. They also have a son together. My brother-inw wasn¡¯t very nice when he discovered that my sister and I were viinized on the inte.¡± Zachary fell silent for a while before responding,¡± Serenity, you can¡¯t use your brother-inw as the benchmark for every man out there .It¡¯s unfair to them and not everyone¡¯s the same.¡± He believed Hank¡¯s feelings for Liberty had gone sour. As the new addition to the family, Zachary did not want to point out that Hank was having an affair without proof. However, it was his gut feeling that Hank was up to no good. ¡°You have a point.¡± By looking at Liberty¡¯s marriage, Serenity was turned off by love and matrimony. Serenity was lucky her man was decent. Although there were times he hurt her pride, Zachary was reliable when it mattered. Her mind wandered back to Jasmine¡¯s teasing. Since she had signed the six-month contract with Zachary, why could she not give the rtionship a go? a rest stop ahead. ¡°There s Do you need the loo? I want to fill up the tank.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Serenity was fine with it. The car cruised along the highway for a few minutes before pulling up at a rest area. Zachary stopped the car at the parking lot. The couple got out of the car together. However, Zachary returned to the car on his own after washing his hands to give Josh a call. With Josh answering the phone, Zachary instructed in a gruff voice, ¡°Josh, I don¡¯t care what you do or how you do it, you need to get those in the know to speak up for Serenity.¡± Josh replied after a pause, ¡°It¡¯s no big deal. I can get it done with a single phone call.¡± Zachary was bringing out the big guns over the littlest matter again. After all, Josh had engaged with themunity there while investigating the Hunts. ¡°What does Serenity n to do?¡± Since the CEO¡¯s wife was at stake, Josh had to ask. However, the truth was, he was just being nosy. ¡°She¡¯s gathering as much evidence as possible to prove the rtives can afford the medical fees. She¡¯s going to pull out the signed contract as well as proof of the Hunts¡¯ treatment toward her and her sister. I think we can turn things around if themunity stands up for the girls.¡± ¡°Serenity seems composed, level-headed, and speaks with reason. She¡¯s just like you.¡± Raising his brow, Zachary snapped peevishly, ¡°How is she like me?¡± ¡°She¡¯s your wife. She got herposure from you after spending so much time with you. She got it together despite being made the victim. What? Do you hate that I praise her wit and poise? Are you taking it the wrong way?¡± Josh mocked Zachary. Zachary was tempted to hang up in Josh¡¯s face. ¡°Can you send someone to the hospital to check on her grandmother¡¯s condition?¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Josh readily heeded the call and asked, ¡°I¡¯ve offered you quite a bit of help here. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Can I take a week off once you¡¯re back?¡± ¡°You get a day at most. People might think you¡¯re going to get fired if you rest for a week. Clive has been waiting to get one-up on me and poach you. He might be upset that it¡¯s not going to Chapter 96 Chapter 96 Chapter 96 ¨C ¡°Of course, I can give you an extra day if you¡¯re going on a blind date and getting married.¡± Josh disconnected his boss-cum-best-friend¡¯s call. Zachary was trying to lead him astray! Not happening! Zachary only married in haste because his nana made him do it. Grandma May took a fancy to Serenity so much so she sacrificed her darling grandson¡¯s marriage. After giving out directives to Josh, Zachary got out of the car and went to get some snacks. By the time Serenity returned , Zachary had snacks ready for her in the car.¡° It¡¯ll take some time to make the roundtrip. Have something to eat. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Don¡¯t starve yourself over a tiny issue,¡± he said. ¡°Have you eaten?¡± ¡±Yeah.¡± Zachary ate just enough to stop the hunger. The snacks were not to his liking, Seeing that Zachary was full, Serenity helped herself with the food Zachary was tasked behind the wheel while Serenity filled her belly. Serenity¡¯s hometown was over an hour¡¯s drive on the highway from Wilt spoon. It had been nearly ten years since Serenity returned to the ce. The sisters woulde back for the summer holidays in the past, but their return was usually met with the grandparents¡¯ cold shoulders. Their grandparents would not feed them, so Liberty and Serenity had to source their own food. That was nothingpared to ater time when their grandparents tossed out their belongings from their rooms touse as storage. The sisters had no ce to stay when they returned. With their parents gone, their grandparents were the girls closest family. Not only did they refuse to take the girls under their care, but they also kicked the girls out and upied the home left behind by the girls¡¯ parents. Liberty and Serenity did not have close ties with the localmunity as they were young. Although some people felt sorry for the sisters, they were powerless to defend against the grandparents. Serenity¡¯s grandmom had quite the temper and a vile mouth. Not many in themunity had the guts to step on the grandmother¡¯s toes. The sisters were also not weed to visit their parents¡¯ graves or look into the parents¡¯ will under the excuse that they were young. In fact, the grandparents took the liberty to name one of the sisters¡¯ cousins as the adopted son of their deceased parents. Under such circumstances , Serenity and Liberty had no reason toe home. If Serenity remembered correctly, the so-called adopted son was John. The grandparents did so for John to take over the house,nd, and farm left behind by Serenity¡¯s parents Zachary was a stranger in the rural area while many did not recognize Serenity as it had been a while since she was back. It gave Serenity full ess to take photos of her uncles¡¯ residences. Back then, her grandparents took her parents¡¯ insurance money and split it between the uncles. The uncles used the money to build new houses and start businesses. Life could not get any better for them. Now, the uncles lived in their standalone vis. They had the mostvish lives in themunity. Setting foot back in the ce she once called home, Serenity stood at the gate and stared at the house built by her parents. Memories of her parents flooded her mind and filled her chest with suffocating despair. There was a catch in her throat as tears in her eyes glistened against the light. Zachary stood not too far behind and watched her quietly. Knowing that she was on an emotional roller coaster, Zachary had the sudden urge to offer her comfortand a shoulder to cry on. Time passed. An olddy was walking by when she caught sight of Serenity. She stopped for a closer look before eximing in joy, ¡°Are you¡­¡± Chapter 97 Chapter 97 Chapter 97 ¨C Serenity swiftly wiped away her tears before turning to look at thedy. Serenity immediately recognized her.¡± You must be Mrs. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Deli.¡± Thedy was one of Mom¡¯s close friends when Mom was still alive. It¡¯s me. You came back.¡± Mrs.Deli was very friendly toward Serenity. ¡°Do you want toe by my ce for a catch-up?¡± She looked at the house and said to Serenity, ¡±I heard your grandmother is sick and getting treatment at a hospital in the city. our grandfather and your uncles made quite the fuss when sending your grandmother there. They all took their cars. People might mistake them for going to some wedding or holiday. ¡°I¡¯ve never seen them so proactive , but somehow, they were very zealous the moment your grandmother fell sick. They were just putting on a show for us.¡± Mrs. Deli had no idea about the tweet online since she was without inte. The viral tweet had not been up for a few hours, so it had not spread far and wide yet. ¡°Mrs.Deli, do they usually ignore my grandparents?¡± ¡°They only visit your grandparents during the holidays. Your grandfather has a pension and some money left from your parents¡¯ insurance. Your grandparents have nothing to worry about. I heard they have a savings of four hundred thousand dors.Mrs. pointed at the vis and said, ¡°Those vis belong to your uncles. They¡¯re the richest people in ourmunity. Your grandfather loves boasting about his children and grandchildren.. ¡°If it wasn¡¯t for¡­Is this your boyfriend?¡± Mrs. Deli believed Serenity¡¯s uncles only had everything going for them because the grandparents took half the insurance money and split it with their sons without any regard for Serenity and Liberty who had just lost their parents. nly then, the uncles had the funds and means to build their careers. All the rtives now own assets worth over a million. It was a contrast to Serenity and Liberty who lost their parents and home. It had been a while since Mrs. Deli heard from the sisters. Now that Serenity was back, Mrs.Deli was happy and felt bad for her, but what could Mrs.Deli do about it? ¡°This is my husband, Zachary.¡± Mrs.Deli uttered in delight, ¡°Oh, you¡¯re married? When?¡± ¡°We recently got our marriage license, but the reception hasn¡¯t happened yet.¡± ¡°I see.Your parents would be happy to see you married.Sigh.Your parents were such nice people but left before their time. Your rtives really took advantage of you and your sister. I¡¯ve been waiting for justice to prevail. They should get what they deserve for all the bad they¡¯ve done.¡± It was a shame that karma never struck back. Zachary gave Mrs.Deli a nod as a greeting before pulling out his phone to tap on the voice recording function. He had secretly recorded the conversation between Mrs.Deli and Serenity. With Mrs.Deli extending a warm invitation, the couple went to her ce and stayed for dinner. After dinner, Mrs.Deli whispered to Serenity, ¡°I¡¯m relieved that you and Liberty are doing fine now. You must be careful not to let your grandparents know about it. Your grandmother is sick. I think it¡¯s the early stage of liver cancer. The surgery probably costs a lot of money. ¡°Knowing them, they will be shameless enough to make you and Liberty pay for it, even though they have more money. Chapter 98 Chapter 98 Chapter 98 ¨C ¡°Back then, your grandparents said you didn¡¯t have to help them with the cost of living if you split them half of the insurance money. Besides, your grandmother is blessed with a lot of children. You girls shouldn¡¯t be forking out the money for her medical bills. ¡°Your parents were still at the morgue when they seized a share of the blood money and hogged your house andnd. They wouldn¡¯t even take you in or let you visit your parents¡¯ grave. Don¡¯t feel bad for not footing your grandmother¡¯s medical expenses.¡± As a close friend to Serenity¡¯s mother, Mrs.Deli was aware of the events at the time. Once the uncles got their hands on the cash, they wanted no part in the funeral since Serenity¡¯s parents died in a gruesome car crash. Her uncles either feigned sickness or made up some sort of excuse to evade the responsibility. It was the mayor who had to step in and give the family a telling-off. With themunity giving them judging looks, the uncles begrudgingly helped put the funeral affairs in order. ¡°Yeah. They are ridiculous.¡± After learning that Serenity was back, some of the townspeople dropped by Mrs.Deli¡¯s for a catch-up. They had nothing to be afraid of since Serenity¡¯s grandparents were not around. Talking about that fateful event, everybody was ceaselessly exchanging their views. They reflected their sympathy for Liberty and Serenity through their narration. Zachary recorded the exchange. He also told the townspeople about the viral tweet and that their recorded conversations would serve as proof to retaliate. Having found out that Zachary put their voice on tape, the townspeople felt put on the spot. Since there was no way to run from rubbing the Hunts the wrong way, they might as well rise to the asion and lend Serenity a hand. Everybody went into detailed ounts about the Hunts¡¯ misdeeds toward Serenity and Liberty so Zachary could have evidence to put forth a strong case. Meanwhile, Old Mrs. Hunt sat on a bed in a ward at Wilt spoon General Hospital, looking rather alive and well. Although she had liver cancer, Old Mrs. Hunt kept a positive attitude. The cancer was still in the early stages, so the illness had not consumed her. Old Mr.Hunt was peeling an apple for his wife as he asked his oldest grandson. ¡°Mike, didn¡¯t you say your n was bound to work? It¡¯s been a while now, but Serenity and Liberty haven¡¯t presented us with the money. ¡°Your grandmother¡¯s going into surgery in two days.The surgery and post-op care cost a few hundred thousand dors.The girls must be doing well for themselves considering they have been in the city for years. They must foot the bill no matter what.¡± Old Mr.Hunt still carried traditional patriarchal values, albeit not shown on ordinary days. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. However, those beliefs reared their ugly heads when money was at stake. Reluctant to spend his sons¡¯ and grandsons¡¯ money, Old Mr.Hunt expected the daughters and granddaughters to cough up cash. This time, the couple had their minds set on getting Serenity and Liberty to pay up. The old folks were still bitter about Liberty refusing to pay for their maintenance when she got married three years ago Mike uttered calmly, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Granddad.The effects are starting to show. I got my friend to help me with the tweet.It¡¯s still viral on Twitter.Manyizens are calling out their atrocity and ungratefulness .They mentioned that a pet dog was more loyal than the sisters.¡± It was satisfying for Mike to read the condemning tweets about the sisters. It was payback for blocking his number. ¡°I¡¯ll get John to write another tweet.¡± John was a senior executive in a subsidiary of Stone Group. He had a secretary who could pen a good article. Netizens always loved a good sequel. Chapter 99 Chapter 99 Chapter 99 ¨C ¡°Won¡¯t they try to exin themselves online?¡± Old Mr.Hunt asked. The inte was foreign world to the old man. N?velDrama.Org owns this. However, he knew the story his grandson posted on Twitter was made up. He was worried that his two granddaughters would straighten the facts and leave the Hunts without the money and pride in the end. ¡°Who would believe them? We hired trolls to write nastyments and spill dirt on Serenity and Liberty. Theizens will st them to kingdome if they even so much as get online.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt chimed in. ¡°Mike, use my phone and give Serenity another call. She better delivers the money right now if she doesn¡¯t want to face public outrage. Liberty probably doesn¡¯t have much money since she has a family. You must get Serenity to open her wallet.¡± ¡±Say that you¡¯ll delete the tweet in exchange for six hundred thousand dors or be prepared to be ruined.She won¡¯t be able to show her face in public,¡± Old Mr.Hunt added ¡°Granddad, we shouldn¡¯t be the ones to call them. We can only get what we want if they contact us instead.¡± Mike believed the trending tweet should be able to force his cousins out of hiding. Old Mr.Hunt believed Mike had a point after thinking about it. The person who made the first move would be the loser. Old Mrs.Hunt contemted for a while before saying,¡± People might not recognize them since the photo you used was over a decade old. Liberty was looking more like her mother thest time I saw her. Serenity takes after her father.¡± Mike answered helplessly, ¡°That was the only picture we have of them. They didn¡¯t stay in touch after they turned eighteen. There was I supposed to find a recent photo?¡± The sisters changed a lot once they reached womanhood. ¡°Ah, why did the tweet drop from the trending list?¡± Mike witnessed the tweet dropping in the Trend ranking. It fell a few more ces minutester when he refreshed the site. With the tweet about to be drummed out from Trends, he quickly gave his friend a call. Despite getting an answer, Mike could not do anything about it ¡°What happened?¡± Old Mr.Hunt asked worriedly, ¡°Is the story not trending anymore because Serenity and Liberty cleared the air?¡± Mike mentioned that there were someizensing to the sisters¡¯ defense when the story went viral. These people clearly knew Serenity and Liberty personally. ¡°No. Apparently, the viral tweet ahead of us wasn¡¯t getting as much traction after our tweet blew up, so our tweet had to be pushed to the bottom. The viral tweet is the gossip about the richest heir in Wilt spoon and the heiress to Stone Group.¡± It was Elisa Stone. She had finally made news with Zachary, but the story about a pair of ungrateful granddaughters stole her limelight. Fueled by anger, she pulled some strings to get traffic taken off the Hunts¡¯ tweet. Thanks to Elisa¡¯s meddling, the Hunts¡¯ tweet quickly made its way down the trending list. Mike¡¯s only option was to seek help from his media friends to share the tweet so the story could reach a wider audience. Serenity and Zachary arrived back in the city at nightfall. ¡°Let¡¯s grab dinner.¡± Zachary uttered tenderly, ¡°We¡¯ll get dinner at a restaurant before going to your sister¡¯s ce.¡± ¡°Sounds good to me.¡± Throughout the day, Serenity observed Zachary¡¯s approach to handling things and began to have trust and confidence in him. Zachary was slick and sharp while staying perceptive and considerate of her feelings. He made sure she never went hungry either. He took Serenity to a fine-dining restaurant. The couple picked a table by the window to be seated. They had just ordered from the menu when Zachary¡¯s phone ringgit was Nana. ¡°Zack, are you with Siren? I think she turned off her phone.¡± Prev Ne Chapter 100 Chapter 100 Chapter 100 ¨C Zachary quietly handed the phone to Serenity. With manyizens blowing up Serenity¡¯s phone with text messages and calls, her phone was out of battery. Serenity could at least get some peace and quiet, but her friends and family had trouble getting in touch. ¡°Who is it?¡± ¡°Nana,¡± Zachary answered. Serenity took the phone and greeted, ¡°Nana.¡± ¡°I just got online and found out about the tweet, Serenity.Are you okay? Do you need help? Just let Zachary know. He¡¯s been around the business world to know a lot of big CEOs. It¡¯s a piece of cake for him to sort things out. ¡°Don¡¯t feel shy to ask. You¡¯re married. You can tell me if he doesn¡¯t even help with this tiny favor. I¡¯ll beat him up.¡± Grandma May had only learned about it now. It was mainly because the viral story did not get far enough. Plus, the tabloid post about Zachary and Elisa snagged the attention away from the tweet. It did not make much of an impact either when it was retweeted by the press. Grandma found out from Cullum that her darling granddaughter-inw was painted in a bad light by her rtives. ¡°I¡¯m alright, Nana.It¡¯s not a big deal.I can handle it, and Zachary has been a huge help. He has been with me the whole day.¡± Nana replied with a smile, ¡°It¡¯s good to hear that the boy has aheart and pulls his weight as your husband.¡± She had a different thought in mind though. Grandma May was counting on the days for their rtionship to blossom once the couple spent more time together. Her grandson should always be there to make Serenity¡¯s problems disappear. It was the perfect opportunity to develop feelings for each other. Her grandson would discover the appeal of Serenity¡¯s independence and unyielding self-empowerment while Serenity would learn that her grandson had a soft touch hiding under a tough exterior. Grandma May could not wait for the day when the young couple became real husband and wife. That would be the time she could wee a great-grandchild. Well, Grandma May was not going to say that in Serenity¡¯s face. Grandma May hung up after checking in on Serenity without sparing a word with her own grandson. Zachary was not a stranger to Nana¡¯s favoritism. Since Nana had no granddaughters, she poured all the love to her only granddaughter-inw and spoiled Serenity rotten. Once the other grandsons got married, Nana would probably share the love among the other granddaughters-inw too. After getting something to bite, Zachary drove Serenity to Liberty¡¯s ce. Hank was not home yet. He sent a text message to Liberty, informing her that he would be homete due to a work engagement. Liberty needed not to stay up for him and should head to bed with the kid. Liberty would not count on her husband to help orfort her anymore. However, she was worried about her sister. With Serenity and Zachary here, Liberty sighed in relief.¡± Where were you, Seren?¡± ¡°I took a trip back to our hometown and collected some evidence in our favor. Are you doing okay, Liberty?¡±. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Liberty responded, ¡°Yeah. I¡¯ve been disconnected from the world while I took care of Sonny over the years.I don¡¯t go out much, so it doesn¡¯t really affect me. It¡¯s been quiet since I changed my phone number. ¡°The tweet didn¡¯tst long on the trending list, but it started making rounds again after the press retweeted it. I had a former colleague who saw the post and shared the link with me, asking if the tweet is talking about us. ¡± Serenity was seething with rage. These people had no shame. So, the rtives were not going to let her go, huh? ¡°Liberty, can you bring me your diary? It¡¯s high time we y ball. Chapter 101 Chapter 101 Chapter 101 ¨C Liberty said, ¡°There¡¯s a part two. It talked about Grandma being admitted into the hospital and prepped for surgery with the date fixed, having received help from kindizens. ¡°Theizens are really tearing into me, calling us ingrates. Apparently, Granddad and Grandma struggled hard to raise us, but we repaid them with nothing after we made something of ourselves. We didn¡¯t even visit Grandma now that she was sick in the hospital. They said we were heartless and a letdown to our grandparents and deceased parents.¡± Liberty did a slow burn after scrolling through the comments all day It hurt especially when her parents were brought into the picture. Mom and Dad were way better children to Granddad and Grandma than her uncles when they were still alive. Yet, this was the treatment Mom and Dad received from Grandma and Granddad now that they were dead. ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t read what the keyboard warriors have to say. They don¡¯t know the truth and will believe just about anything. Without even realizing that they¡¯re being used, these keyboard warriors think they¡¯re so righteous and kind. They¡¯re just pawns to hurt the innocent.¡± money. ¡±Serenity stared deeply into Zachary¡¯s eyes before turning to console her sister. ¡°Don¡¯t waste your feelings on them, Liberty. We already know what kind of people they are. I¡¯ll sort out your diary now and give them a dose of their own medicine.¡± Zachary jumped in when appropriate. ¡°I know a lot of people in the press. We¡¯ll fight fire with fire.¡± He would also extend the outreach so everyone would know theHunts were merciless monsters. Were Serenity¡¯s cousins not getting far ahead in their careers? Zachary would love to see if their future was justas secured as now after this. He would not live up to his ruthless reputation if Zachary did not bring the Hunts to ruin. Serenity started topile the evidence, taking photos of Liberty¡¯s diary together with voice recordings to post on Twitter. Soon, the response of the ungrateful granddaughter went viral with the help of Zachary. The tweet even pushed the gossip about Zachary and Elisa aside, taking the number one spot on the trending list. Liberty¡¯s diary detailed the truth of the events. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Only fifteen at the time, Liberty¡¯s penmanship reflected her age. The sudden loss of their parents and their rtives¡¯ demands for a share of the blood money opened the sisters¡¯ eyes to a world of peril. Chapter 102 Chapter 102 Chapter 102 ¨C The despair, anger, sadness, and helplessness did not go amiss between the lines. Tears filled Serenity¡®s eyes as she flipped through her sister¡®s diary while ounts of the past flooded her mind. Dad¡®s side of the family and Mom¡®s side of the family were ripping each other apart over the insurance money. All of them were trying to get a bigger cut. No one cared about Serenity and me. No one talked about adopting us and taking care of us. Mom and Dad were dead, but all they could think about was money. What about our feelings? Is this what they call a family? Mom, Dad,e home. Do you know what your daughters are going through now? How could you leave me and Serenity behind? It was raining. Was God feeling sorry because my sister and I lost our parents? We didn¡®t have a mom and dad anymore. I cried for Mom and Dad, but they could no longer hear me. I looked at Serenity¡®s clueless face and cried. She cried too. Serenity had been asking me when Mom and Dad wereing home. She missed them. I held my sister and cried. I told her that Mom and Dad were never returning. They went to Heaven and abandoned us. We have be orphans, children without a mom and dad¡­] (To get more money, Granddad and Grandmom said that we won¡®t owe them anything if we agree to give them six hundred thousand dors. I mean, they have other children who can help with their retirement. All they want is money, money, money. Money is more important than family. Is money more important than their granddaughters? The blood money was an exchange for their son and daughter¨Cinw¡®s lives. Don¡®t they have any consideration for their son and daughter¨Cinw with all that fuss about money? Oh, I guess they don¡®t care about the dead since Mom and Dad are gone. In the end, they took the money. Granddad and Grandma got six hundred thousand dors, and Mom¡®s side of the family didn¡®t want to miss out either, so they wanted the remaining half of the insurance money. What are we going to do if they take away all of Mom and Dad¡®s life insurance? The mayor couldn¡®t stand it anymore and insisted that some money be left to us for our future and education. In the end, Mom¡®s parents took four hundred thousand dors. They also said we didn¡®t have to be responsible for them anymore and vice versa. Mom wasn¡®t their biological daughter anyway. The four hundred thousand dors waspensation for raising Mom.) (Granddad and Grandmom hit me and Serenity with a stick to chase us out. They said that since Mom and Dad are gone, the house now belongs to them. I tried to refute it in tears. Mom and Dad built that house. Why can¡®t Serenity and I live there anymore? The townspeople took pity on us, but they couldn¡®t argue over Grandma. My uncles and cousins are on my grandparents¡® side. The townspeople were told to mind their own business. Our stuff was thrown on the floor. N?velDrama.Org owns this. They smashed Mom¡®s photo frame and said they¡®d burn Mom and Dad¡®s pictures if we didn¡®t leave right now.) [It was raining heavily again. Holding a photo of Mom and Dad, I took Serenity¡®s hand and carried our light luggage as we reluctantly moved forward in the rain. We left in the end. Serenity and I are only kids. There¡®s no chance we can beat the adults. I¡®m sorry, Mom and Dad. Serenity and I are useless. We can¡®t even protect our home¡­) Theizens could picture the events as they read Liberty¡®s diary entries. Many expressed in thements that they were saddened to tears. There were townsfolk who stood up for Serenity and Liberty, using the Hunts of crossing the line. It finally got through to theizen¡®s head that they had been fooled. The supposed grandparents had never raised the granddaughters, nor did they pay for their education. As a matter of fact, the grandparents took a chunk of the insurance payout after their son and daughter¨Cinw passed away in an ident. Chapter 103 Chapter 103 Chapter 103 ¨C Serenity put her sister¡®s diary pages on Twitter in response to the viral tweet about ungrateful granddaughters. Apart from Liberty¡®s diary, Serenity also put forth evidence from her hometown to prove her grandparents| had been living a nice life upon pocketing several hundred thousand dors. Their children were also among the richest in town. It struck Zachary that his dashcam would have recorded Old Mr.Hunt¡®s cocky voice when he called Serenity while Zachary and Serenity were on the way to Liberty¡®s ce for dinner. Zachary went to check on it and confirmed another crucial piece of evidence caught on tape. Serenity then uploaded the recording of her conversation with Granddad onto the inte. She left theizens to fume and raise hell as it was no longer her concern. Zachary did not give the file on the Hunts to Serenity to publish online. Instead, he left it in Josh¡®s hands to expose the upations and ies of the family¡®s children and grandchildren, under the identity of a fellowizen. All the traction garnered by the tweet the Hunts made in the beginning had now backfired on them. The sameizens, whombasted Liberty and Serenity for their ungratefulness, were now sting the poster of the original tweet. With all bets off, Mike¡®s media friends immediately deleted their retweets in fear of being caught in the netizens¡® hellfire. ¡°Everything¡®s okay now, Liberty. You don¡®t have to worry anymore. They won¡®t ever ask us for money. The only reason they¡¯de and look for us is to apologize and beg us to overlook the whole thing.¡± Serenity consoled her sister. ¡°They make me sick to my stomach.¡± Liberty picked up her sleeping child. ¡°We¡®ve done our part. Justice will prevail. I believe in that. Siren, you and Zachary must be tired after running around all day. You should hurry home and get some rest. ¡°Go on and take Sonny to bed then.¡± Serenity and Zachary waited until Liberty came back from putting Sonny to bed to wish her goodnight before leaving The day out did wear Serenity down. Still, Serenity caringly asked Zachary when they got home, ¡°Do you fancy supper, Mr. York? I can cook.¡± A friend in need was a friend indeed. Zachary had proved himself a keeper time and again when Serenity was in a jam. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. However, there were no sparks between them. Not to mention, the six¨C month contract offered Serenity no assurance in the future of their marriage. Feelings aside, Zachary had helped her a lot and been there through it all. Serenity should really thank him. ¡°I¡®m not hungry.¡± Zachary declined. His dark eyes were fixated on her for a moment before he was heard saying,¡± Get some early rest. Goodnight.¡± ¡°Goodnight.¡± After the couple said their goodnights, Zachary returned to his bedroom as Serenity stood there and watched him shut the door. The sound of his door locking saw Serenityughing at herself. They were only a little more than total strangers. He helped her in his duty as her husband. And nothing else. Chapter 104 Chapter 104 Chapter 104 ¨C Instead of retreating to her room, Serenity went to the balcony and sat on the swing as she stared at the flowers and stars in the night. Having pulled herself together, Serenity got up and went to her room. It was a quiet and peaceful night for the young couple. N?velDrama.Org owns this. Meanwhile, at the hospital , the Hunts were caught in a media hell storm. The media circus which they had dragged Liberty and Serenity into did not impact greatly on the sisters. However, Serenity¡®s response to their tweet not only contained Liberty¡®s ount of the truth back then, but also the recording of the townspeople¡®s narration. Even the town council backed up Serenity¡®s ims. The Hunts¡® jobs, ie, and residences were uncovered by resourcefulizens. They lived in vis and had decent employment with annual ies ranging from hundreds of thousands to over a million. Now, enough about the younger family members. Old Mr.and Mrs.Hunt had savings up to hundreds of thousands as well. The Hunts family had more than enough to foot the grandmother¡®s medical bills but they sought damages from the two granddaughters instead. Theizens did not take too kindly to the proofs, especially the phone conversation between Old Mr. Hunt and Serenity. [The grandfather would rather guilt¨Ctrip his granddaughters into paying the bills than spend his own money. It¡®s not like the family doesn¡®t have other children. All their children are sessful on their own, so why can¡®t they pay up?) (Why bring the granddaughters into the picture when they have children? Besides, the grandparents signed a contract that both parties won¡®t owe each other anything after getting the insurance money. They sure have the nerve to change the story to their advantage.] (Get a load of that voice recording. The grandfather must be joking. I can¡®t believe he¡®s demanding the granddaughters to pay for gas and amodation. The children should be caring for the sick parents in the hospital, not the granddaughters!) [It¡®s reasonable to expect the children and grandchildren toe together and chip in for the medical bill, but why were only their granddaughters targeted? Never mind that the grandsons are not contributing with the funds, the grandfather wants the granddaughters to reimburse the grandsons¡® gas and amodation. Talk about discrimination against girls.] (The guy named John is a senior executive at one of Stone Group¡®s subsidiaries. The Stones should reconsider their hiring policies.) Once theizens got information on the Hunts¡® jobs and ies, Serenity¡®s cousin, John received the most hate. John was not all that innocent since he got his secretary to pen the storyline to his narrative. There were users who tagged Stone Group¡®s official handle. The public was calling for John¡®s dismissal. ¡°The d*mn brats. They¡®re trying to get my children and grandchildren in trouble. Those girls will hear from me about this. Bastards! Ingrates! What¡®s wrong with asking them to pay for their own grandmother¡®s medical bills? I don¡®t see why I can¡®t tell them off since they won¡®t even visit or pay.¡± Old Mr. Hunt was running his mouth in the ward. Old Mrs.Hunt echoed her husband¡®s opinion. All she could think of was to get out of the hospital and give the granddaughters an earful or two. The whole family came together at the hospital, cramming in the ward as they discussed their next ns. Mike was all over the ce. His friends were bitter that Mike twisted the story and put them in a difficult position. A few of his friends wanted to cut ties with Mike, iming he was a terrible human being. ¡°What do we do now, Mike?¡± Mike¡®s father asked. ¡°I read thements. It¡®s not looking good for us. How did the public manage to dig out information on our jobs and ies?¡± ¡°Everything else is not important , but John must keep his job. These nastyizens are tweeting to Stone Group¡®s official handle , demanding that they fire John.¡± John did not make it to the hospital because of his busy schedule. He would contact Mike directly for anything. Since the reverse of public outrage, John went straight to hiring professional trolls to paint the family in a good light. He also spent money to make Serenity¡®s tweet disappear. It was strange that he could not reduce traffic on the tweet. With every attempt of whitewashing the truth in the Hunts¡® favor, the professional trolls faced bacsh from angryizens and in the end, the netizens¡® spite and fury overwhelmed them Chapter 105 Chapter 105 Chapter 105 ¨C John¡®s father, Chris Hunt, said to Mike, ¡°John¡®s job is priority. If he loses his job over this¡­¡± Chris stopped short of finishing the sentence, but by the look on his face, Chris was putting the me on Mike. It was Mike¡®s idea to turn the media against Liberty and Serenity. ¡°Uncle Chris, John has been with his company for a long time. His boss won¡®t fire him over something so trivial. I¡®ll rify that John has nothing to do with the whole thing.¡± Mike ran a home business, so whatever was going online had no adverse effect on his business. Feeling assured, Chris phoned John and told him to exin his innocence in all of this before potentially losing his job. ¡°The girls are too much,¡± one uncle reproached. ¡°Fine if they didn¡®t want to pay. Why did the girls have to ruin us like this?¡± Although the Hunts¡® tweet about the ungrateful granddaughters went viral, the post did not spread as far and wide as they liked. Serenity¡®s response, however, received a lot of attention, and the Hunts began to get calls from friends and family about it. Many strangers even called in to give the family a piece of their minds. The Hunts had no idea whether Liberty and Serenity were subjected to cyberbullying, but they were now in the eye of the storm. The public bacsh was happening both online and in real life. There were people who came to the hospital to chew them out. If it were not for the hospital¡®s security guards chasing the people away and threatening to call the cops, the Hunts would probably be in direct contact with the public¡®s fury. The family might even get rotten eggs thrown at them. One of Serenity¡®s aunts broke her silence. ¡°I wasn¡®t in favor when you all decided to do this. Mom and Dad signed an agreement with the girls over ten years ago that they would owe us nothing. Now that Mom¡®s sick, you¡®re all ganging up on the girls to fork out cash. ¡°It¡®s not like Mom and Dad don¡®t have us. We all have money. It¡®s our responsibility as children to take care of Mom now that she¡®s not at her best. Why did we have to drive Liberty and Serenity up the wall? Even the worm will turn. Liberty and her sister aren¡®t worms. Did you forget about what happened three years ago? ¡°You¡®re well aware of what you did to the girls when their parents passed away. Do you think you can get them to pay by making up a story online? Think about it. Who¡®s the biggest loser should they retaliate? There are only two of them while we¡®re one big group.¡± Everybody kept their mouths shut. The family was one when they were after the money. Now that everything had backfired, they started ming each other. A whileter, old Mr. Hunt asked, ¡°What do we do now?¡± He regretted giving Serenity a call. It never urred to him that the brat would record their conversation. He continued, ¡°Let¡®s see if we can contact Serenity to delete the tweet. It won¡®t end well for us if things get bigger than they already are. ¡°Mike, get in touch with that brat and tell her to delete the tweet. At worst, they don¡®t have to pay for their grandmother¡®s medical treatment.¡± Old Mr.Hunt believed the fix would be as simple as that. Mike replied helplessly, ¡°She blocked my number.¡± He fell silent for a moment before adding, ¡°I¡®ll write another tweet in Grandma and Granddad¡®s names to apologize to Serenity and Liberty. We could y our cards right and let the girls know that Mom and Dad admit their wrong and regret their actions. Now that they¡®re old and terminally ill, all they want is to see their granddaughters. Hence, they resorted to such an extreme measure. ¡°There¡®s no way I¡®m going to apologize to them. Sure, we signed the agreement, but that didn¡®t mean I¡®m not that grandmother anymore. N?velDrama.Org owns this. Shouldn¡®t theye to visit me when I¡®m sick? Shouldn¡®t they pay for my surgery?¡± Old Mrs.Hunt refused to budge. ¡°Just don¡®t read the negativements. It¡®s not like theizens can kill us.¡± Chapter 106 Chapter 106 Chapter 106 ¨C Old Mrs.Hunt was well-known in town for her temper. She was assertive and never yielded to anyone. She insisted that her children and grandchildren were not in the wrong God knew how long the olddy could keep up with that pride. Without any idea how her rtives spent the night, Serenity had a good night¡¯s sleep. As morning light rolled around, she dreamed about her parents. She cried out to her mom and dad while trying to reach them but only caught air. By the time she woke up, tears had drenched her pillow. Serenity stared nkly at the ceiling for a long time before sitting up. She pulled out tissues to wipe away traces of tears on her cheeks as she mumbled under her breath , ¡°Mom, Dad, did you know that your daughters were bullied? Don¡¯t worry. Liberty and I aren¡¯t the same kids from fifteen years ago. They can¡¯t push us around anymore.¡± She picked up her phone for a look. Serenity muted her phone before she went to bedst night. There were multiple missed calls and unread text messages. Serenity checked on the missed calls. Since they were unfamiliar numbers, Serenity guessed they were from the Hunts. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. She randomly tapped on two text messages to read. It was about asking her to delete the tweet and that they were a family no matter what. The Hunts said they would be ruined because of her. The family would put everything behind them if Serenity deleted the post. Serenity would not need to pay for the grandmother¡¯s medical treatment too, but she shoulde to the hospital to visit her grandmother if she had a heart. It was the least she could do as a granddaughter. Serenity could not be bothered to read more of these messages. These people still believed they were in the right while Serenity went overboard. It did not seem to dawn on the Hunts that they were the ones who started it. Liberty and Serenity would be torn apart by the public if the sisters did not have sufficient evidence to disprove the tweet. Why should Serenity do her part as a granddaughter when her grandparents did nothing for them sisters? Should Serenity be grateful that her grandparents took half of her parents¡¯ life insurance payout? Should Serenity be grateful that her grandparents beat up the sisters and kicked them out her parents¡¯ home? As if! Other than the Hunts¡¯ text messages, concern came flooding in from Jasmine, Shawn, and friends too. Serenity replied to them that she was doing well. After a quick wash-up and change of clothes, Serenity walked out from her room into the kitchen. It was time to prepare a rich and nutritional breakfast for her man. Serenity made it extra special today to thank Zachary for his help andpany. Zachary came out of his room to a sumptuous breakfast spread on the table. He asked, ¡°Serenity, did you invite anyone over for breakfast? What¡¯s with the feast?¡± ¡°We¡¯re not expecting guests. It¡¯s just us.¡± Dumbstruck, Zachary ensued with a smile. ¡°Are pigs flying? To what do I owe this great banquet by our great chef?¡±] Serenity took off her apron and replied, ¡°Yes. Pigs are flying. It¡¯s a shame you got upte and missed the miracle.¡± Zachary was amused by her cheekyeback. He enjoyed a goodugh to find his yful wife staring at him in awe Chapter 107 Chapter 107 Chapter 107 ¨C Tensing his facial muscles, Zachary gave Serenity a warning look. ¡°Mr.York.¡± Serenity asked him, ¡°Can I kiss you?¡± Zachary was stumped. Had she no shame? She went as far as to ask a man this kind of question. ¡°Your smile is gorgeous. It took my breath away. I just want to hold you and have my way with you.¡± ¡°Serenity, you sure have the cheek.¡± ¡°My cheeks are right here.¡± Serenity smacked her face with a smile as Zachary winced. ¡°I only said that because we¡®re married. I mean, we¡®re married in the eyes of thew, so it¡®s not a crime to kiss you.¡± With Zachary pulling back a few steps, Serenity burst outughing at his flight instincts. Zachary flew off the handle. Well, she was to be med for his reaction. Thest time she even touched his face out of nowhere. As her roars ofughter tipped him over the edge, Zachary closed in suddenly and grabbed the chuckling girl to pull her into his arms. Zachary dipped his head forward and sealed her lips, swallowing herughter altogether. Serenity¡®s giggles ended abruptly. Taken aback, Serenity widened her eyes and stared at the magnified face. She only poked fun at him because his smile was beautiful. She enjoyed teasing him since, in terms of romantic intimacy between a man and a woman, he was more of a nk te than she was. It never urred to her that Zachary would one¨Cup her. He put her words into action and kissed her. Zachary merely pressed his lips against hers to stop the aggravating giggles. Without exploring her lips for a taste, Zachary released his hold and shoved her out of his embrace. Curling his finger, he flicked her on the forehead. Serenity cried out in pain. ¡°That¡®s what you get for acting smug,¡± Zachary said in a raspy voice, He then, like nothing ever happened, sat down at the table and calmly ate his breakfast. Serenity was speechless. Running her fingers against her lips, Serenity stared at her husband who started on breakfast with a stoic expression. Who was ying who? So, who won? It was clear that she lost. That was quite a scare for Serenity. Having snatched ast¨Cminute victory, Zachary was feeling as cheery as the sun in the sky. He relished his meal. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. In order to beat the game of love, shamelessness is all that mattered. He got her good because she was not up to his level. Since Serenity did not have the guts to even make aeback with another kiss, she bashfully took a seat opposite him while ring at the man. Zachary found it hrious. He thought Serenity had more experience than him and would show him the ropes. It turned out that she was no better than he was. On the day they signed the papers, Serenity mentioned that she had a rtionship in the past, but that was eight years ago. It must be her first love. First love usually happened at the age when everything was pure and innocent. In other words, Serenity, like him, was a nk sheet of paper. ¡°Why did you prepare such a feast today? Is it to thank me for yesterday?¡± ¡°Yes, Captain Obvious.¡± Zachary gleefully filled his te with food and said, ¡°I was helping you and myself. You¡®re my wife no matter what. It wouldn¡®t look good on me if anything were to happen to you. Of course, I¡®m d you¡®re grateful for it. I enjoyed today¡®s breakfast.¡± Chapter 108 Chapter 108 Chapter 108 ¨C ¡°You don¡®t have to transfer the money for the car.¡± Zachary changed the subject back to the recent car purchase. As Serenity did not have Zachary¡®s bank ount details, she had been sending fifty thousand dors to his mobile device every day. However, Zachary had not once epted the transaction. The first transaction of fifty thousand dors had made its way back to Serenity¡®s bank ount. ¡°I got you a car, so it¡®ll reflect nicely on me. Presentation is important after all. I might be busy with work, but there are asions I¡®d need to bring you to business dinners too. It will be humiliating for me if people find out that my wife rides a malfunctioning e¨Cbike.¡± Zachary saw the car as keeping up appearances. ¡°I thought it was an apology gift,¡± Serenity retorted. Zachary replied after a pause, ¡°It works both ways.¡± ¡°Well, don¡®t give me any more living allowances for the year since you already got me a car.¡± Zachary lifted his chin and stared at her without saying yes or no. Serenity took his silence as his affirmation on the matter. It was a weight off her shoulder as she believed she owed him nothing now. ¡°Pay no mind to your rtives for now. They might stick to their guns now, but it won¡®tst long. They¡®ll apologize to you. You and your sister can bring your grandparents to court over your parents¡® house. You should make them pay half if not all. ¡°No need to go soft on people who prey on you and walk all over you.¡± If Zachary had a choice, he would make the Hunts¡® lives a living hell. This was Serenity¡®s personal business. He could offer suggestions on what to do, but ultimately, it was her choice to make. ¡°I¡®ll go to court to repossess my parents¡® home after Grandmom¡®s surgery.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Zachary answered. They were her grandparents after all. Serenity tried to show a bit of leniency as they were still family. After breakfast, Serenity went into the kitchen and brought out two containers. She said, ¡°Most of the breakfast is untouched, so I¡®ll pack it up for you. You can bring it with you to the office and have it when you¡®re hungry. We shouldn¡®t waste food.¡± Zachary pulled a long face as he believed bringing packed lunch to the office was beneath him as the CEO. ¡°I¡®m full. I don¡®t need any packed lunch.¡± ¡°Okay then. I¡®ll bring the food to the shop. Jasmine loves my breakfast, and Shawn too. He¡®d usually pass by the shop on his way to work. I¡®ll text him now to drop by for breakfast on his way to work.¡± She should never go heavy on making breakfast ever again. Despite knowing that Serenity¡®s feelings for Shawn were restricted to friendship, the mention of Shawn still put Zachary in a foul mood. He fell silent for a while before making the sacrifice.¡± Give me the packed food. Callum¡®s working in the same office too. I¡®ll bring him some.¡± It was better than letting Shawn have it. ¡°Don¡®t make too much food even if it¡®s just to thank me. It¡®s just the two of us. How many are you trying to feed?¡± Serenity always had a huge appetite, but she had overdone herself today. She would not be able to finish all that food alone. ¡°Cullum, is it? Yes. Share the food with him.¡± Zachary¡®s younger brothers and cousins struck quite an impression with Serenity. It was mainly because they were charming hunks in their own way. Who would forget a beautiful face? ¡°Sure,¡± Zachary responded. After putting food into the containers , Serenity cleared the table and washed the dishes. She then went to the balcony to water her nts. With the flowers in a beautiful bloom today, Serenity took a bunch of photos as usual and shared them on Facebook. Zachary was rarely on Facebook, but since having a wife, he would keep an eye on her latest update. Her activity on Facebook would give Zachary an idea of her personality. He was always the first to check out Serenity¡®s post of flowers. However, he would never like her posts because he did not want her to know he had been keeping up with her.Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Chapter 109 Chapter 109 Chapter 109 ¨C Zachary stood at the door to the balcony and watched Serenity quietly for a minute before turning on his heel to leave for work. All this happened without Serenity knowing Carrying his wife¡®s packed lunch for him, Zachary was on his way to work. Before leaving, he said to Serenity, ¡°I¡®m off to work.¡± ¡°Drive safe,¡± Serenity replied kindly. Zachary closed the door and carried two containers of food down the stairs. His bodyguard squad was waiting for him there. They were either caught standing , perching, or sitting in the greenery. Having caught sight of Zachary descending with food containers in hand, the bodyguards got on their feet and stared at him. No one drew close to Zachary. Zachary was speechless. What? Did they not recognize him because he was carrying containers of food? ¡°Sir.¡± Thinking on his feet, Jim took quick paces over and attentively took the packed food from Zachary. Without a word, Jim headed straight to the Rolls Royce. Soon, the Rolls Royce drove out of the neighborhood escorted by the bodyguards¡® vehicles. Serenity happened to look down from the balcony and saw the luxury sedans, which weremonly spotted in the neighborhood, driving away in convoy. She also caught sight of her man¡®s national MPV tagging along at the very end. It was better to give way to the expensive cars than cut into theirne. God forbid if anyone crashed into them. The repair cost would be too much of a burden for ordinary people to afford. The area must be one of the finest neighborhoods since a resident was driving a ten¨Cmillion¨Cdor Rolls Royce here. Serenity wondered how much Zachary paid for the house. Zachary worked as a senior executive at a major corporation. However, Serenity knew nothing beyond that. She never asked him either. Since he kept his guard up against her, Zachary¡®s mind would go on the deep end again if she started asking questions about his job. After Zachary was gone, Serenity nourished the flowers with water and took a seat on the swing. She had time to read theizen¡®sments after her big response. Seeing that theizens were having a go at her rtives, Serenity felt at ease. There were people who advised Serenity to forgive and forget since it was all in the past. Plus, her grandmother was sick and frail now. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Nevertheless, otherizens jumped to Serenity¡®s defense whenever thesements turned up. It was unwise to judge a person until others had walked a mile in their shoes. People were unlikely to let bygones be bygones if they were in Serenity¡®s shoes. Serenity believed barely a handful of them would be able to put everything behind. Nevertheless, it was always easier said than done. Serenity was out the door after a quick rest. Needless to say, she went to visit her sister first. Liberty had already left to get groceries with her son by the time Serenity arrived at her ce. Serenity called her sister and found out that her sister would not be back any time soon, so she made her way to the bookshop. The Coo¡®s office Having made himself a nice cup of coffee, Cullum was walking out of the pantry and ran into Zachary who knocked on the door and came right in. ¡°Zack,¡± Cullum said as he approached Zachary. Spotting the boxes of packed food in Zachary¡®s hands, Cullum uttered with a smile, ¡°Are you here to deliver me breakfast, Zack?¡± Chapter 110 Chapter 110 Chapter 110 ¨C Zachary stood at the door to the balcony and watched Serenity quietly for a minute before turning on his heel to leave for work. All this happened without Serenity knowing Carrying his wife¡®s packed lunch for him, Zachary was on his way to work. Before leaving, he said to Serenity, ¡°I¡®m off to work.¡± ¡°Drive safe,¡± Serenity replied kindly. Zachary closed the door and carried two containers of food down the stairs. His bodyguard squad was waiting for him there. They were either caught standing , perching, or sitting in the greenery. Having caught sight of Zachary descending with food containers in hand, the bodyguards got on their feet and stared at him. No one drew close to Zachary. Zachary was speechless. What? Did they not recognize him because he was carrying containers of food? ¡°Sir.¡± Thinking on his feet, Jim took quick paces over and attentively took the packed food from Zachary. Without a word, Jim headed straight to the Rolls Royce. Soon, the Rolls Royce drove out of the neighborhood escorted by the bodyguards¡® vehicles. Serenity happened to look down from the balcony and saw the luxury sedans, which weremonly spotted in the neighborhood, driving away in convoy. She also caught sight of her man¡®s national MPV tagging along at the very end. It was better to give way to the expensive cars than cut into theirne. God forbid if anyone crashed into them. The repair cost would be too much of a burden for ordinary people to afford. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. The area must be one of the finest neighborhoods since a resident was driving a ten¨Cmillion¨Cdor Rolls Royce here. Serenity wondered how much Zachary paid for the house. Zachary worked as a senior executive at a major corporation. However, Serenity knew nothing beyond that. She never asked him either. Since he kept his guard up against her, Zachary¡®s mind would go on the deep end again if she started asking questions about his job. After Zachary was gone, Serenity nourished the flowers with water and took a seat on the swing. She had time to read theizen¡®sments after her big response. Seeing that theizens were having a go at her rtives, Serenity felt at ease. There were people who advised Serenity to forgive and forget since it was all in the past. Plus, her grandmother was sick and frail now. Nevertheless, otherizens jumped to Serenity¡®s defense whenever thesements turned up. It was unwise to judge a person until others had walked a mile in their shoes. People were unlikely to let bygones be bygones if they were in Serenity¡®s shoes. Serenity believed barely a handful of them would be able to put everything behind. Nevertheless, it was always easier said than done. Serenity was out the door after a quick rest. Needless to say, she went to visit her sister first. Liberty had already left to get groceries with her son by the time Serenity arrived at her ce. Serenity called her sister and found out that her sister would not be back any time soon, so she made her way to the bookshop. The Coo¡®s office Having made himself a nice cup of coffee, Cullum was walking out of the pantry and ran into Zachary who knocked on the door and came right in. ¡°Zack,¡± Callum said as he approached Zachary. Spotting the boxes of packed food in Zachary¡®s hands, Cullum uttered with a smile, ¡°Are you here to deliver me breakfast, Zack?¡± Chapter 111 Chapter 111 Chapter 111 Serenity was unaware that her man was a little jealous and went to the store. Since she had nothing to do there, she started making her handicrafts again. Jasmine saw that Serenity was busy making a miniature tree and asked, ¡°Serenity, why are you always making this miniature treetely? Is it a hot item?¡± Serenity just finished making the sculpture, so she stopped for a short break. When she heard her friend¡®s question , she smiled and said, ¡°My online business has been doing very well recently, and the best¨Cselling item is this miniature tree! There are so many orders for this.¡± ¡°Did theizens feel sorry for you and Liberty after looking at your response? Is that why they are supporting your online business?¡± Serenity thought about it for a while and said, ¡°It doesn¡®t seem like it. The Hunts only put my childhood photo online, and they didn¡®t know my phone number or other details. The original tweet has since been deleted, and those influencers have also deleted their tweets.¡± The influencers were probably afraid of being implicated by the Hunts. ¡°Luckily,Mr. York¡®s gossip news was more popr than that trending story, so I managed to retaliate before theizens had time to investigate my background and workce. That¡®s why I think it¡®s unlikely that the tweet helped to boost the sales of my online business.¡± At the mention ofMr. York, Jasmine became intrigued and said mysteriously , ¡°I heard from my aunt thatMs. Stone was upset that your trending story diverted theizens¡® attention from hers, so she secretly suppressed your trending story.¡± Serenity was oblivious to this andughed. ¡°If you put it that way,Ms. Stone indirectly helped me!¡± She thought about it andughed again. ¡°I really want to thankMs. Stone. I hope she can winMr. York¡®s heart as soon as possible!Ms. Stone is the heiress to Stone Group and has all the money and power in the world, so she should be able to find out whether there¡®s any problem withMr. York. We¡®re lucky that no one heard us joking aboutMr. York¡®s impotence back then, so it¡®s best we don¡®t joke about this again.¡± Jasmine said casually, ¡°We were just gossiping anyway. How wouldMs. Stone know ifMr. York is impotent? There haven¡®t been any young women aroundMr. York, so who knows if he has any problems in that departinent?¡± ¡°I don¡®t thinkMr. York andMs. Stone will end up together because the Yorks and the Stones don¡®t get along very well. If the two giants be rivals and go head¨Cto¨Chead in the future,Ms. Stone will be caught in the middle. Who should she help?¡± Jasmine broke it down for Serenity. ¡°Neither the Yorks nor the Stones will support their rtionship. ButMs. Stone is truly bold to publicly confess her love toMr. York with such great fanfare. She¡®s forting about her feelings; I admire her for that.¡± Serenity had a short break and took out the craft materials to continue making more miniature trees.¡± Anyway, that¡®s their business. People like us will probably never get to seeMr. York. We can listen to the asional gossip, but we shouldn¡®t waste our time on it.¡± ¡°Your mom hasn¡®t forced you to go on a blind date recently?¡± Serenity asked. ¡°Not for the time being. Maybe my aunt said something to her. I¡®m guessing my aunt will invite me to another dinner party soon. Serenity¡­¡± ¡°Don¡®t even try to get me to go to those parties again. I¡®m not interested.¡± Serenity refused without a second thought. She did not want to attend another dinner party like that again after having experienced it once. That did not mean Serenity was scared to be among the people of high society; she just did not enjoy that kind of asion. ¡°There will be a lot of good food, so let¡®s go and eat to our heart¡®s content!¡± ¡°I can afford my own meals.¡± ¡°But are you willing to spend on expensive food? I know you¡®re saving up to buy a house.¡± Jasmine hit the nail on the head. Serenity stopped talking. ¡°Seren, we¡®re best friends, so I ought to share all the good stuff with you! It¡®s settled then, I¡®ll tell my aunt that you¡®ll apany me if she asks me to go to a dinner party. We can get to know more about high society if we attend more of these fancy dinner parties!¡± Jasmine tried his best to persuade her friend to apany her. ¡°Ant Swer!¡± Sonny shouted.Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Chapter 112 Chapter 112 Chapter 112 Jasmine and Serenity¡®s conversation was interrupted. When Serenity saw her sister and nephew walking in, she immediately stopped her work, stood up, and walked around the cashier. Jasmine was quicker than Serenity. She was already hugging and kissing the adorable Sonny. She even raised him up high, which made the little boyugh. ¡°Liberty, why are you here?¡± Serenity noticed that it was past ten o¡®clock. At this hour, Liberty would usually be preparing lunch at home. If Hank did not have lunch when he got home from work, he would beining again. ¡°I was bored at home, so I came over to have a look. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Sonny was also making a fuss because he wanted to see you.¡± Liberty took off her hat, wiped off the sweat on her forehead, and said, ¡°It¡®s almost November, but it¡®s still so hot!¡± Wiltspoon¡®s fall was simr to summer, and it was not that cold in winter. It was only cool in the morning and evening. During the day, it was still sweltering as long as it was sunny. ¡°It¡®s past ten o¡®clock. Don¡®t you have to cook, Liberty?¡± Serenity did not think that it was her sister¡®s duty to cook for her brother¨Cinw. She only asked because most people ate at noon. ¡°I fed Sonny before I came here, and I brought his milk powder over, so he can y here until the afternoon. I¡¯ll order takeout with youter, or I can go to the nearby market to buy some ingredients and cook for you girls in your small kitchen.¡± ¡°As for your brother¨Cinw¡­ I¡®ve already measured the pasta and filled a pot of water for him. All he has to do is boil it when he gets back. I¡®ve washed some vegetables for him and put them aside in the kitchen. He can nch or stir¨Cfry them for all I care.¡± 1 Jasmine heard what Liberty said andughed. ¡°Liberty, are you just doing half the work for him?¡± ¡°Since we¡®re going halves, we have to go halves in everything! What¡®s the point of this system if I¡®m doing all the housework? He wanted to go halves but he thought it was just limited to the expenses.¡± Liberty was heartbroken because of her husband¡®s recent behavior. Therefore, she had been very firm when it came to going halves as she wanted to get back at Hank. That way, Hank would not dare to use this to control and threaten her in the future. For three years of marriage , Liberty made concessions wherever she could. She raised their son, quit her job, lost her figure, and was treated with disrespect in return. If she did not fight back, he would think that she was a pushover. Hank would think that Liberty was weak if she did not retaliate. Both Serenity and Jasmine gave Liberty a thumbs up. They agreed that Liberty should notpromise on everything Since Hank proposed going halves, he should get a taste of his own medicine. ¡°Hank was so nice to Liberty back then. It hasn¡®t been that long since they got married. What an eye¨Copener¡­¡± Jasmine sighed. Marriage was truly the graveyard of romance. Single people wanted to get married, but married people wanted out. Jasmine did not want to get married so soon. She wanted to enjoy a few more years of freedom. Liberty said resentfully, ¡°My mother¨Cinw and sister ¨C inw instigated all this. He trusts his family too much.¡° Chapter 113 Chapter 113 Chapter 113 ¡°I brought all the gifts that Serenity and Zachary boughtst time into my room because I was so angry about this going Dutch issue.¡± Liberty sat on a chair. Serenity went into the small kitchen , took some fruit from the refrigerator , washed them, and offered them to Liberty while Jasmine poured a ss of warm water for her. She took a few sips of water and decided to tell them about her family troubles. She came over today because she felt aggrieved and frustrated, seeking her sister to confide in. If Liberty did not find someone to talk to, she was afraid she would fall into depression. Moreover, Liberty had known Jasmine for many years and knew that she could keep a secret. Liberty continued, ¡°When I woke up the next day, Hank sent his family away, which I was d to see, but before they left, they took all the gifts that Seren and her husband gave me ¡°My sister inw even took some of Sonny¡®s toys. I was so angry whien I found out, but Hank said that we don¡®tck those things, so he gave them all to his sister ¡°Does his sisterck those things then? His sister and her husband are working and have a steady ie. My parents¨Cinw are helping them to take care of their children and they too have social insurance, so their pensionsbined are more than enough for their expenses. Yet, they still want Hank to give them an allowance. Isn¡®t Hank just subsidizing his sister¡®s family? ¡°His sister and her husband¡®s ie are untouched because they spend his parents¡® and Hank¡®s money. If Hank didn¡®t have a family to support and was willing to spend money on his sister, no one could say anything about that. But Hank has his own family, and we still have a mortgage to repay. How could she have the nerve to spend her brother¡®s money to support her family?!¡± Liberty could not understand her husband¡®s behavior. Hank knew that his parents were using his money to subsidize his sister¡®s family, yet he still transferred money to his parents every month without a hitch. On the other hand, Hank was so stingy with her. This agonized Liberty. She also scolded her inws for putting up such a good act before she married Hank. Everyone pretended to be nice for so many years and sessfully deceived her. As soon as she married Hank, got pregnant, and gave birth to Sonny, they finally revealed their true colors. ¡°It¡®s right for a son to support his parents, but why would be support his sister¡®s family? I¡®m not saying that he shouldn¡®t give them anything, but he should give them less and save more for Sonny¡®s education. He didn¡®t listen to my advice and even suggested going halves as if was spending a lot of his money.¡± Liberty regretted quitting her job early and bing a full¨Ctime housewife. Once a woman had no source of ie and had to stretch out her hand to ask a man for every cent, she would unconsciously lower herself and lose her confidence and ce in the household. Liberty knew what it felt like. Fortunately, Liberty could still rely on her sister to support her, so she did not have to worry about her expenses. Jasmine was stunned and said, ¡°Most parents like to subsidize their sons. Why do Hank¡®s parents want their son to subsidize their daughter? It could be justified if their daughter was struggling to make a living, but she¡®s not poor. She has a house, a car, and savings.¡± Serenity was familiar with the characters of her brother ¨C in¨C law¡®s family members. She took her nephew from Jasmine¡®s arms while saying to her sister, ¡°Liberty, you can start looking for a job now. You can leave Sonny to me. I¡®ll take care of him during the day.¡± ¡°It¡®s so that if you decide to get a divorce in the future, you can confidently fight for Sonny¡®s custody. If you don¡®t have a source of ie, how will you fight for him?¡± Jasmine was taken aback. However, when she thought about Hank¡®s money¨Chungry family, she had a feeling that Liberty would get divorced sooner orter. No one could put up with such a husband and inws for a lifetime. Liberty looked at her son and said, ¡°I¡®ll put up with them for another couple of months. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. It¡®ll be the New Year soon, then Sonny can start kindergarten. You can just help with fetching him from there in the afternoon.¡± She must look for a job soon. Even if Liberty could notnd an executive role as she did before her marriage, she would still be able to get a decent job with her capability. Chapter 114 Chapter 114 Chapter 114 Serenity hummed in response. She kissed her nephew and asked him, ¡°Do you want to go to the kindergarten?¡± ¡°No.¡± The little guy liked to cling to his mother at this age. Serenity smiled and said to her sister, ¡°Have you thought about which kindergarten to send Sonny to? If you have, we can take Sonny there to y on weekends so he can get acquainted with the environment. Once he¡®s familiar with the ce, he won¡®t be resistant to attending kindergarten.¡± Many kindergartens allowed parents to bring their children to visit and y there during weekends. Liberty agreed and said, ¡°There¡®s one more thing that exasperates me. Hank¡®s sister told him that she wants to transfer her two older children to the city for school, so her kids will live with us. She asked me to help with pick ups, drop¨Coffs, cooking, and tutoring. Does she think I¡®m a babysitter for free? ¡°Hank even said that he was willing to give me an extra fifteen hundred dors for food. He said since I was already raising one child, it¡®d make no difference to raise another two. N?velDrama.Org owns this. I¡®m willing to raise my child because I gave birth to him, so no matter how tough it is and how tired I am, I won¡®t mind it. But why should I take care of someone else¡®s kids? ¡°He also said that he would transfer our house¡®s title deed to his sister. That way, it¡®d be easier for his sister¡®s children to go to school in the vicinity. I think he has brain damage. How would he get his house back once it¡®s been transferred?!¡± Serenity and Jasmine were speechless when they heard this. There were such cases online, but they could not imagine that it would happen to Liberty. Liberty confided in them and did not hold back. She took two more sips of water and continued, ¡°Seren, I told Hank that if he wants to transfer the house to his sister, he¡®ll have to pay for the renovation costs. Otherwise, I won¡®t be able to get anything out of this. ¡°Back then, I forked out four hundred thousand dors to renovate that house.¡± IL All her savings from working for so many years were spent on running her small family. ¡°If he doesn¡®t pay me the renovation costs, I¡®ll get a divorce. That way, I¡®ll get my renovation fees back. Seren, will you help to keep a lookout for a suitable ce for me to rent? If Hank keeps this up, our marriage will soone to an end.¡± Liberty had noticed and felt her husband¡®s indifference and avoidance. She had never felt so heartbroken to the point she wanted a divorce. The two issues recently along with her husband¡®s and inws¡® attitudes made Liberty feel disheartened. Liberty began to think about what life would be like after the divorce so she could make arrangements and be prepared for it. Hank bought the house before marriage, so Liberty would not get a cut from it. However, she must get back the renovation costs that she paid for. ¡°I¡®m deeply disappointed in his attitude over the troubles we¡®ve encounteredtely,¡± Liberty said with her reddened eyes. It took so much effort for the Hunt sisters to survive through all that, but Liberty made a mistake in marrying such a man. It was partly her fault for being blinded and tricked by Hank. She thought she married a good man, but who would have thought she married such a scumbag? Chapter 115 Chapter 115 Chapter 115 Liberty said, ¡°But not all men are like Hank. Jasmine, don¡®t shy away from marriage just because of my failed marriage. If you do, I¡®ll feel guilty forever.¡± She remembered that Serenity¡®s best friend was still single and was being pushed into marriage by her family. Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°I know that there are scums everywhere. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. I just want to find someone I like whom I can entrust my life with when I get married. I won¡®t be influenced by you, Liberty. But I¡®ll be careful about the characters of my other half¡®s family before I marry someone in the future.¡± Jasmine¡®s mother often said that marriage was not just about marrying a man, but marrying into that man¡®s family and integrating into his circle of rtives and friends. There was a lot to consider. Jasmine nced at her best friend and admired Serenity. Liberty clearly had a failed marriage. However, she could not be impulsive in getting a divorce because of Sonny. Liberty had to ensure she could make a living by herself and improve her standing to Hank¡®s level before she could get a divorce. Serenity and Zachary got married at first sight, so neither of them knew each other before marriage. Such a marriage required a lot of courage. Jasmine knew she would not have the courage to marry a stranger at first sight. At present, Zachary was better than Hank. At least, when Serenity encountered difficulties , Zachary tried his best to help and never gave up. However, he still signed a half year agreement with Serenity. This alone made Jasmine feel disheartened, and she was worried about her friend¡®s future. Serenity did not say anything because some things were better kept from her sister. Ring ring ring¡­ Serenity¡®s phone rang. She picked up the phone, saw the caller ID, then handed Sonny to her sister and said, ¡°Zachary¡®s calling.¡± ¡°I¡®ll head outside to answer the call.¡± Serenity was afraid that her sister would overhear their conversation and learn their secret, so she went outside to answer the phone. Liberty just thought Serenity wanted some privacy with her husband by doing so. Serenity walked out of the bookstore. After making sure that she was far enough for her sister to not be within earshot, she answered Zachary¡®s call. ¡°Mr. York, what¡®s the matter?¡± There was silence on the other end of the line. Zachary said nothing. Serenity thought the call was not connected, so she moved the phone away from her ear and looked at it to make sure she answered the call. She then asked the man over the phone, ¡°Mr. York, are you listening? Can you hear me?¡± ¡°Mm,¡± Zachary finally hummed. If he did not say something, Serenity would definitely hang up. ¡°Mr. York, what¡®s wrong?¡± Serenity asked again. Zachary did not know why he made the call. He just went back to his office after a meeting and had a few minutes of free time when he made this call. He instantly regretted it when Serenity answered the phone. That was because he did not know why he wanted to call Serenity. ¡°Have any of your rtives contacted you?¡± Zachary finally found an excuse. ¡°They sent me a lot of messages, but I only read a few of them and ignored the rest. They asked me to delete my response to the tweet, and if I do, they won¡®t ask us for money. In short, they didn¡®t think they were at fault and even said that I was ruthless.¡± ¡°Don¡®t delete it so the public can see their true colors.¡± ¡°I won¡®t delete it. This time, I want them to concede and publicly apologize to me and my sister. They need to promise not to extort us lest something like this happens again.¡± Chapter 116 Chapter 116 Chapter 116 Zachary hummed and said, ¡°They wouldn¡®t dare mess with you again after this ordeal.¡± The Hunts would only regret it. ¡°Where do you usually go for lunch?¡± Serenity asked suddenly. ¡°Outside.¡± Zachary replied, and then asked back, ¡°Do you want to invite me over for lunch?¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°I¡®ll invite you over if you¡®re free since you¡®ve helped me so much. I¡®m very grateful for your help and have nothing to give in return, so let me treat you to a meal. But don¡®t choose restaurants that are too fancy. I¡®m afraid I won¡®t be able to afford it.¡± Zachary wanted tough. Serenity wanted to treat him to a meal to thank him, but she was afraid that she would not be able to afford a meal at a high¨Cend hotel. Was this sincerity genuine or what? ¡°I don¡®t have much free time during lunch, and there are too many people in the nearby restaurant at that hour. If you really want to treat me to a meal, go home early in the evening and cook a feast for me. But don¡®t overdo it since we won¡®t be able to eat that much.¡± Zachary would never pack food for Callum again. Why should he pack his wife¡®s cooking for Callum? So what if Callum was his cousin? If Callum wanted to eat home cooked food, he should get a wife for himself so he could eat his wife¡®s home¨Ccooked food every day. If Callum knew what Zachary was thinking at that moment, he would say, ¡°Zachary is indeed jealous!¡± Haha, what a p in the face! Some time ago, Zachary said that he did not know what jealousy was and would never experience it. Did he finally know what jealousy feels like? Serenity smiled. ¡°Alright then. I¡®ll go home early tonight to buy some ingredients and cook up a feast for you!¡± ¡°Thanks for your hard work.¡± Zachary did not think that it was a wife¡®s duty to cook for her husband. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Thus, he was grateful that Serenity was willing to cook for him. Both of them had to go to work and had their own jobs, so no one had it easier than the other. It would take both the husband and wife to work together to build a happy family, The couple ended the call in less than five minutes. After the call ended, Zachary looked at his phone for a moment, put it on the desk, and muttered, ¡°Am I possessed? What did I just do?¡± He suddenly called Serenity when he had free time. Zachary was indeed possessed to do such strange things. Ring ring ring¡­ The phone rang again. Zachary quickly picked up his phone as he expected the call to be from Serenity. When he saw an unknown number, he felt a fleeting disappointment and he quickly put aside that feeling. He then answered the call from this unfamiliar number. ¡°Zachary¨C¡± The whining voice was deliberately coquettish and sounded very fake. Zachary frowned upon hearing it and did not give the other party a chance to speak again. He hung up and blocked the number because it was Elisa Stone! This woman actually managed to get his contact number. Who gave it to her? Was it Clive? Clive did not support their rtionship. Every time Elisa made a luss at the entrance of Zachary¡®s office building, Clive or his wife would personallye to pick Elisa up. With this, Zachary was sure that Clive would not give Elisa his contact number. Zachary did not know who betrayed him and cursed the traitor. He was disgusted by Elisa¡®s bold confession and open pursuit of him. He was unfeeling by nature. Nana said he was fine with family, but when it came to love, Zachary was just a cold, rigid blockhead. Without Nana¡®s help, he would stay single forever. Chapter 117 Chapter 117 Chapter 117 Serenity tucked her phone into her pants pocket and was about to go back into the store when she saw her sistering out of the store. ¡°Liberty, where are you going?¡± ¡°I¡®m going to get some ingredients to cook for you girls. Don¡®t order takeout for lunch. It¡®s not good for your health to eat too much takeout. ¡°Seren, keep an eye on Sonny.¡± Serenity did not stop her sister from getting ingredients and cooking for them. She just told Liberty to be careful on the road. Serenity did not drive her new car to work and rode her e bike as usual because it was convenient and fast. She was afraid of being stuck on the road during rush hour. ¡°Liberty, I¡®ll transfer some money to you.¡± Serenity did not want her sister to use the food expenses her husband gave on them, so she sent Liberty some money. Liberty rode the e bike to the market. She still had money herself to buy food for her sister. After watching Liberty leave, Serenity returned to the store. It was not the first time Sonny came to the store, and he was also familiar with Jasmine, so he did not cry or cause trouble when his mother left him. However, the little boy walked all around the store and touched the books and pens that he could reach. His curiosity was piqued. ¡°Did your husband call?¡± Jasmine winked at her. ¡°He must have missed you to call you during work hours.¡± ¡°He called to ask if my money¨Chungry rtives contacted me.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Oh, that¡®s only because he cares about you. Seren, you should perhaps consider a real rtionship with Mr. York.¡± ¡°I do think he¡¯s a good man after being with him for so long, but we¡®ll see.¡± Zachary still had his guard up around Serenity and resisted her approach. She did not want to be aggressive, so she would just go with the flow. Serenity thought about the light kiss this morning with neither of them taking it a step further and was surprised. She felt like she struck gold because Zachary was so innocent in that aspect. It was rare for a man of his age to be so innocent This also proved that Zachary was indifferent to rtionships. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. No wonder his grandmother had to use so much effort to pair them up. Without Nana¡®s involvement and with Zachary¡®s temperament, Zachary would be blessed if he could get married at the age of fifty. ¡°Jasmine, what are good gifts for men?¡± ¡°Do you want to give your man a gift?¡± ¡°He helped me so much, so I want to express my gratitude.¡± Jasmine said enthusiastically, ¡°I noticed that my mother usually buys clothes, ties, watches, and shoes for my father. My father likes to drink, so my mother asionally buys a few bottles of fine wine for him.¡± LULU ¡°I don¡®t know his size, and his clothes are all ck. I suggested he change the color of his wardrobe, but he shot that idea down immediately. His face was glum, and his tone was very cold when he told me not to care about his wardrobe choices.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°Your man looks hard¨Cshelled and stone ¨Cfaced, so wearing a ck suit makes him even more callous. I can tell that he must be way up there on the corporatedder, beating countless peers. ¡°Just think about what he likes and give him something ordingly.¡± Serenity was at a loss. The problem was that she did not know what he liked. ¡°You can find out from Grandma May.¡± Jasmine reminded her friend. Serenity thought that was a good idea, so she called and asked Grandma May. Chapter 118 Chapter 118 Chapter 118 Nana heard that Serenity was inquiring about Zachary¡®s hobbies and saw hope in the couple¡®s future. N?velDrama.Org owns this. She happily told Serenity about her eldest grandson¡®s preferences and even private things like his favorite color of underwear. Zachary¡®s clothes were all tailored and delivered to the door once they were finished . Grandma May saw them and therefore knew what color underwear Zachary liked to wear. ¡°Seren, there aren¡®t many things that Zachary likes, so you don¡®t need to think too much about it. Just buy him some clothes. I¡®ll tell you his size.¡± ¡°What if he doesn¡®t like what I bought?¡± The olddy smiled. ¡°It¡®s the thought that counts. It¡®s his business whether he wears it or not, but I think he¡®ll definitely wear it.¡± That boy liked to hide his feelings. He might show his dislike for the clothes that his wife bought for him, but he would still wear them to the office and show them off. Even though Grandma May was no longer in charge of thepany¡®s affairs, she still had ways to find out about what was going on in the office Zachary had been showing off the benefits of having a wife in front of Josh Bucham. Hearing Nana¡®s words, Serenity decided to buy two sets of new clothes and two ties for Zachary. Serenity checked her wallet and could not afford to cater to Zachary¡®s rare preferences. She was always true to herself and did things within her means. She would never pretend to be rich. After wrapping up her work at noon and having lunch, Serenity rode her e¨Cbike to the mall to buy Zachary some clothes. She also took Liberty and Sonny home on the way to the mall. ¡°Liberty , Hank might quarrel with you again when you get back.¡± When they were busy at the store earlier, Hank called Liberty and asked her why she did not cook for him. Serenity heard Liberty¡®s reply. Needless to think, Serenity knew how angry Hank must be after being used to Liberty¡®s royal treatment all those years. Liberty was silent for a while before she said, ¡°Since I did this, I¡®m not afraid of getting into a fight with him. ¡°Seren, if I get a divorce one day and need your help, you have to help me. But don¡®t worry, I¡®ll stand back up again.¡± Liberty needed her sister in terms of finances. However, she would be borrowing money and would not allow Serenity to just give it to her. When she could stand on her own feet again, she would repay her sister. ¡°Liberty, don¡®t say that. Your business is my business. I¡®ll stand by you no matter what you decide. Zachary also said that you can go to him if you need his help. He just doesn¡®t like to deal with Hank.¡± ¡°Zachary is a good man. You should cherish him and manage your small family well. Don¡®t follow in my footsteps. What I regret most is listening to Hank¡®s nonsense and believing that he¡®ll support me forever. That¡®s why I left the workce and became a housewife. It turns out that it¡®s all bullsh*t!¡± ¡°I¡®ll cherish him.¡± Serenity sent Liberty home and insisted on taking her upstairs. Ji Hank dared to be rough with Liberty, Serenity would fight him. After a few minutes, Liberty opened the door and entered the house with Serenity and her son, who had fallen asleep halfway into the journey. ¡°Where the hell did you go? Why are you only back now? ! thought¡­Oh, Seren! You¡®re here, too.¡± Hank wore an apron and came out of the kitchen with a spat in his hand. His face was extremely glum. He wanted to scold his wife, but when he saw his sister¨Cinw, he swallowed those reproachful words. ¡°Hank, you haven¡®t had lunch?¡± Serenity asked knowingly. Hank red at his wife, but Liberty pretended not to see it. She carried her son back to the room. Hankined to his sister¨Cinw. ¡°Seren, look at your sister! All she does is care for Sonny and doesn¡®t do anything else at home. I have to cook for myself when Ie back from work. What¡®s the point of having a wife?!¡± IL Serenity was furious when she heard this. Hank married her sister to be his nanny for free! Chapter 119 Chapter 119 Chapter 119 ¡°Hank, you want to go Dutch with my sister when she doesn¡®t have a job. She¡®s at home raising your kid, yet you have the nerve to go halves with her. What¡®s the point of my sister having a husband then? ¡°You always say that my sister doesn¡®t do anything at home, so she fulfilled your wish and did nothing today. Oh, wait¡­ My sister still did half of the work. At least, she bought the ingredients, measured the pasta, and prepared a pot of water for you. All you need to do is cook it yourself.¡± Hank opened his mouth and wanted to say something , but Serenity did not give him a chance to speak. She continued , ¡°Hank, do you think that your house cleans itself every day? Sonny is still young, so when he ys with his toys, he likes to put them all over the floor and he can¡®t pick up after himself. ¡°You don¡®t think that those toys put themselves away, do you? Also, who do you think takes care of your meals every day? Isn¡®t my sister doing your dirtyundry too? ¡°Didn¡®t my sister make three meals a day for you? ¡°You only resent my sister for not having a job and ie. If it wasn¡®t for my sister taking such good care of the household, would you be able to concentrate at work? ¡°This home is shared by the two of you. My sister is in charge of household matters while you¡®re the breadwinner of the family. You can¡®t say that my sister doesn¡®t do anything for your family just because she doesn¡®t have a job. In fact, my sister has it harder than you at work. Why don¡®t you and my sister switch roles? You can doundry, cook, take care of the baby, and clean up the house while my sister goes to work.¡± Liberty¡®s ie before marriage was not much lower than Hank¡®s. Hank opened his mouth several times after being refuted by Serenity, but he was speechless. After a while, he said sheepishly , ¡°Serenity, I only said one sentence, but you gave me such a long lecture as if I¡®ve abused your sister. Aren¡®t you busy at the store? If your business isn¡®t good and you don¡®t make much, just close your business and work for someone. ¡°Isn¡®t Zachary working in a bigpany ? You can ask him to pull some strings so you can join hispany. It¡®s better to get a few thousand dors a month than to sustain a business.¡± Serenity said coldly, ¡°You don¡®t have to worry about my finances. I make enough for my expenses and have some spare change.¡± ¡°I¨CI¡®m going to cook.¡± Hank knew that his sister¨Cinw was angry and did not continue talking. He turned around and went back to the kitchen. Serenity took a few deep breaths. Liberty was not ready to get a divorce yet, so Serenity had to put up with Hank. Serenity would go all out on Hank if he daredin about her sister again when Liberty gets a job and prepares for the divorce. She entered Liberty¡®s room and saw her sitting on the edge of the bed, gently touching Sonny. She knew that Liberty was only putting up with this because of her child. Hearing the door opening, Liberty turned her head and saw that it was Serenity. She got up, walked towards Serenity, and said softly, ¡°Serenity, your brother¨Cinw won¡®t listen to what you say. Don¡®t worry about me. I¡®ll protect myself until I give up on him. ¡°Aren¡®t you going to buy a gift for Zachary ? You should get going then. Don¡®t worry about me. I¡®m fine.¡± ¡°Then I¡®ll go shopping now. Call me if you need anything. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Tell me if he dares hit you. I will never allow anyone to hit my sister!¡± Liberty nodded. She endured so much before because she loved Hank At this moment, Liberty only felt disappointment toward Hank. She was only getting by for the time being for Sonny¡®s sake because she was not capable enough to gain custody. Hank would not be able to threaten her ii she got back on her feet. Serenity left under Liberty¡®s urging. When Serenity left, Hank had just finished cooking a dish and brought it out from the kitchen. Seeing that Serenity was about to leave, he asked perfunctorily, ¡°Serenity, have you eaten?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± Serenity casually responded and left. Hank did not cook all the dishes that Liberty prepared and only made one dish. He forked a piece of his vegetable , put it into his mouth, tasted it, and spat it out immediately. Chapter 120 Chapter 120 Chapter 120 It was unptable and sweet. How was it sweet? Did he take sugar for salt? Hank immediately went into the kitchen and picked up the box of seasoning to see if it was sugar, salt, or monosodium glutamate. They were all ced in the same box, so he must have mistaken sugar for salt just now. Before Hank got married, his mother cooked for him at home. After marriage, the Hunt sisters cooked for him. He did not have to cook all his life. It was no wonder the dish he cooked was unptable because he mistook sugar for salt. Then, he looked at the pasta in the pot. Since Liberty had measured everything for him, the pasta was edible. However, the spoiled Hank could not swallow in pasta without any seasoning or meat. Hank turned hot ¨C tempered when he thought how hard he had worked for the first half of the day and came back without food on the table. He went into the room angrily and became more infuriated when he saw Liberty sitting on the bed, looking at her phone. He suddenly stepped forward, pped away Liberty¡®s phone, grabbed Liberty¡®s hair. He dragged her to the floor and started throwing punches and kicks at Liberty. He did not yell at Liberty for fear of waking up his son who was fast asleep. Liberty was unprepared for Hank¡®s sudden attack and was dragged to the ground by her hair. When she came back to her senses, she retaliated immediately. Hank was a man, and he caught her by surprise, so Liberty was still at a disadvantage even when she fought back. However, Liberty would not admit defeat even if her face and nose were swollen and bruised because of Hank¡®s beating. She remembered a colleague once told her that when a couple fought for the first time, the woman had to win no matter what and could never lose the fight. That way, the man would know that the woman was not easily bullied That was the only way to restrain a man. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. If the woman lost the first fight, the man would be addicted to violence. When it came to domestic violence, there would either be zero or countless urrences. Hank threw another punch at Liberty. Although she was in pain, she grabbed his fist tightly and bit down hard on his arm, so much so that Hank cried out in pain. Hank used his other hand to pull Liberty¡®s hair, but the more he pulled, the harder Liberty¡®s bite was. ¡°Liberty, let go! Let go of me! Let¡®s let go of each other!¡± Hank shouted as he could not take it anymore. He let go of his hand that was pulling Liberty¡®s hair and used that hand to push Liberty away. The moment he let go of Liberty, Liberty pounced at him. In the past two years of being a mother, Liberty did not watch her figure and put on at least thirty to forty pounds after marriage. She pressed her full body weight on Hank, who felt like he was crushed by a boulder. This time, Liberty had the upper hand. She took a deep breath and pped both sides of Hank¡®s face with all her might. Liberty fought back just as hard as how Hank hit her earlier. She only stopped and got up from Hank¡®s body when he cried and howled with blood at the corners of his mouth. After gasping for a few breaths, Liberty turned around and went to the kitchen to get a kitchen knife. By then, Hank got up from the ground and called his parents and sister, telling them that he had taught Liberty a lesson, but Liberty retaliated. When he saw Liberty charging at him with a knife, Hank was horrified and did not bother toin anymore. Hank was chased around the room and finally took the opportunity to run outside. Chapter 121 Chapter 121 Chapter 121 Liberty chased after Hank with a kitchen knife. Hank did not expect Liberty to be so tough. Liberty had always been gentle and thoughtful since their marriage. Eventely, when he yelled at her, she would only quarrel with him on the asion that he went overboard. This time, Liberty acted like a lunatic after he hit her. L Not only did Liberty fight back, but she also went ahead to get a kitchen knife. 111 Hank ran out of the room and then out of the apartment. Liberty did not stop either and chased after him with the kitchen knife. She chased Hank down the stairs. This scene shocked the entire neighborhood. Liberty ran after Hank with the kitchen knife for five blocks. When she was exhausted , she sat by the side of the road to catch her breath. Hank was also tired and sat far away from her. When Hank¡®s parents and sister rushed over and saw them, Hank felt aggrieved. His parents were exasperated when they saw their precious son looking so wretched with both sides of his face swollen. Chelsea even rolled up her sleeves and said angrily, ¡°That b*tch actually had the audacity to hit my brother! I¡®ll kill her!¡± Mrs.Brown was so distressed that she burst into tears and scolded him. ¡°Are you two enemies? How dare she beat up my son?! I knew she was crazy because she grew up undisciplined , without parents, and I told you not to marry her! But you insisted! ¡°You¡®re such a big man, yet you can¡®t defeat a woman. You keep telling us that you¡®ll teach her a lesson, but look at you now!¡± Mrs.Brown forgot that their family persuaded Liberty to marry Hank because Liberty¡®s ie was very high back then. Now, they despised Liberty. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Mr.Brown also cursed Liberty. ¡°I couldn¡®t even bear to hit my son all this while. Liberty went overboard this time! Where is she? I¡®ll stand up for you and promise to hit her back. She lives in your house and spends your money, but she dares fight back when you teach her a lesson. Does she have a death wish?!¡± Mr.Brown saw that his daughter was already running toward Liberty and immediately followed suit. ¡°Dad! Chelsea! She has a knife!¡± Hank shouted and quickly got up to run after them alongside his mother. Liberty took a short break and saw her inws aggressively running toward her. She stood up, clutched the kitchen knife, and red at the family with murderous intent. The Browns rushed over and stopped when they saw Liberty¡®s murderous look and the glint of the kitchen knife that shone in the sun. They also noticed that Liberty¡®s face was no better than Hank¡®s. Liberty had a bruised face and a swollen nose, with blood on her nose and the corners of her mouth. Her hair was disheveled, and she had many bruises and shoe prints on her arms. Needless to say, they knew that it was Hank¡®s doing. ¡°Liberty, how dare you fight with Hank?!¡± Chelsea did not dare to come forward, but shouted at Liberty, ¡°Hank told us there was no food on the table when he came back from work. Is that how you should act as a wife? You don¡®t do anything at home and want Hank to cook by himself. When has Hank ever cooked in his life!¡± ¡°He only hit you a little because he¡®s angry. You should just take it How dare you fight back?!¡± ¡°That¡®s right! Look at how hard you¡®ve beaten my son! You¡®re a shrew! I¡®ll get Hank to divorce you! Just look at you now. How will you live without Hank?¡± ¡°You use Hank¡®s money and live in his house, yet you still have the nerve to fight with him. No woman would beat up her husband like this!¡± Chapter 122 Chapter 122 Chapter 122 Liberty sneered. ¡°He was the one who insisted on going halves, so I just did what he wanted. How is it right that he can do whatever he wants to me when he¡®s angry? You¡®re distressed when you see him like this, but can¡®t you see how he beat me up too? ¡°He¡®s your precious son, but I¡®m human too! Yes, my parents are dead, but even if I¡®m an orphan, I won¡®t let you abuse me! ¡°Are you gonna come at me one by one, or all together? Come at me! I¡®ll be straight with you. If you don¡®t want to be with me anymore, just say the word and we¡®ll get a divorce. Don¡®t you think you can get away with abusing me! I¡®m not a pushover! If you dare bully or beat me up again, I¡®ll make sure to drag your whole family to hell before I die! ¡°Hank Brown, I told you long ago that if you ever darey your hands on me, you¡®d better beat me to death because if I¡®m alive, you should sleep with one eye open. Otherwise, I¡®ll chop you to pieces and mince you up!¡± Libery red at her inws fiercely. If they had the guts to charge at her, she would fight to the death and die with them! The Browns were speechless. ¡°What a shrew! She¡®s so unreasonable!¡± Mr. Brown scolded Liberty and said to his son, ¡°Hank,e home with us.¡± Hank was also frightened by Liberty¡®s behavior today. He had known her for twelve years and never knew she was so ruthless. Hank¡®s legs were still shaking when he recalled Liberty¡®s fierce look, so he left with his parents and sister. At the same time, he called his boss to ask for a leave of absence. He had to recuperate at home. Chelsea drove over. After the Browns got into the car, Chelsea said, ¡°Hank, you should divorce her and take custody of Sonny. Don¡®t give her custody. Let¡®s see if she can stay arrogant.¡± Hank wiped the blood from the corner of his mouth and asked his parents, ¡°If I divorce her, will you help me take Sonny?¡± ¡°Mom and Dad already have their hands full with my kids,¡± Chelsea said. After a moment of silence, Mr. Brown said, ¡°Sonny is still young. Your mother and I are helping Chelsea with her baby, and we have to pick up the two older ones from school. How can we take care of Sonny? Hank, don¡®t be impulsive about the divorce¡­¡± ¡°Don¡®t give Liberty any expenses. If you cut off her finances, she won¡®t be so arrogant anymore. N?velDrama.Org owns this. You can divorce her when Sonny is old enough to attend kindergarten. That way, we can handle the pick¨Cup and drop¨Coff.¡± Hank had a new lover, but he had not gotten a divorce because he knew his son was still young and his parents could not help him take care of Sonny. After listening to his father¡®s advice, Hank said spitefully, ¡°She will never get a penny from me ever again!¡± Mr. Brown reminded him. ¡°If you don¡®t want to get a divorce, don¡®t hit her again. Liberty is ruthless. If you can¡®t defeat her, just let her be and stop abusing her.¡± Hank stopped talking He was terrified of Liberty. ¡°Right. Don¡®t give her any more money. Also, you bought the house, and her name isn¡®t on the title deed. Don¡®t let her stay there and kick her out!¡± Chelsea suggested it to her brother. Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Now that Serenity is married and her husband has a house, kicking Liberty out is not enough to threaten her. Hank, I reminded you before not to go overboard for Sonny¡®s sake. You have to be careful next time.¡± ¡°I saw the mistress you¡®re keeping. She¡®s not as hard working as Liberty.¡± Hank looked at his mother in astonishment. ¡°Mom, how did you know?¡± Mrs. Brown snorted. ¡°You were so nice to Liberty before, but you suddenly had a change of character. I knew there was something wrong when you started treating Liberty badly. I saw you having dinner with a young and beautiful woman in a five¨Cstar hotel a few days ago. You both had such intimacy that I knew right away what was going on.¡± Chapter 123 Chapter 123 Chapter 123 Hank¡®s family found out about his affair and did not rebuke him for it. Hank said, ¡°Liberty kept gaining weight after giving birth to Sonny. She lost her figure, and I just couldn¡®t stand her anymore. Jessica is considerate , young, and beautiful. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. I think she¡®s my true love.¡± Mrs.Brown said frankly, ¡°Your mistress is only eyeing your status and ie. If you¡®re just an ordinary employee like before, will she like you?¡± ¡°Although Liberty is ruthless and beats you up, she has taken good care of you throughout your marriage and managed the household very well. She has endured hardships, so she knows how to live within her means and manage a family. That woman you¡®re dating doesn¡®t seem to hold a candle to Liberty.¡± Although Mrs.Brown was partial to her son, her evaluation of Liberty was pertinent. ¡°You need a virtuous wife. Hank, you can fool around all you want and I won¡®t say anything, but if you marry that girl, you must be careful lest you regret it in the future.¡± Most men who divorced their wives and married their lovers did not have good lives. Mrs. Brown was very satisfied with her son¡®s current situation, but she did not want her son to lose his happiness and get retribution. Chelsea said, ¡°What¡®s so good about Liberty? Just look at how she beat up Hank! We can¡®t tolerate such a woman as Hank¡®s wife. Hank, I support you and Jessica. You¡®ll only know if you can live a good life after marrying her. How can anyone predict that? ¡°Initially, Liberty was also polite and gracious. Who would¡®ve thought she would chase Hank down a few blocks with a kitchen knife and beat him up like this?¡± Mr.and Mrs.Brown stopped talking then. ¡°Hank, you shouldn¡®t go home these few days. Don¡®t give her money and don¡®t apologize to her. She should be the first to apologize and admit her mistake. You can go back after she apologizes and promises not to do it again,¡± Chelsea advised Hank. ¡°Even if you don¡®t get divorced now, you shouldn¡®t admit defeat. Otherwise, your status in the household will plummet. You¡®re a big man who should be calling the shots. You can¡®t let a woman bully you.¡± Hank said, ¡°I definitely won¡®t go back for the next few days.¡± Liberty would not cook for him, so it would be better to stay at his parents¡® house to recuperate and eat good food for a few days. He would then return to work when he was fully recovered. Hank did not intend to hide this from Jessica. He sent a message to his lover, saying that he was abused by his wife. When Jessica received the news, she consoled him, which made Hank more inclined toward her. Liberty breathed a sigh of relief knowing that Hank did not go home. At least she did not have to go to Serenity¡®s house for refuge. When she got home, she saw that her son was still asleep, so she quickly applied a coldpress to her face and tidied herself up. She was afraid her son would be frightened to see her like this when he woke up. Hank yanked out a lot of her hair, which scattered all over the floor. She cleaned them up with a broom. Fortunately, Liberty had voluminous hair. Although a lot of hair was yanked out, it was not noticeable after shebed and tied it up. Serenity was unaware of Hank abusing Liberty right after she left, and that such a big fight urred. After leaving her sister¡®s ce, Serenity went to a pedestrian street to buy some clothes and ties for Zachary. Grandma May told Serenity about Zachary¡®s size, so Serenity chose two sets of new clothes, both in Zachary¡®s favorite color, which was ck, as well as two new ties. After making the purchase, she went back to the bookstore. It was during the evening rush hour when students were out of school as Zachary arrived around six o¡®clock. However at this time, the students were attending extra sses after school, so the store was not busy. Knowing that Serenity needed some alone time with her husband , Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°Serenity, go home with Mr.York. Don¡®t let him wait here for too long. I¡®ll close up tonight Chapter 124 Chapter 124 Chapter 124 Serenity said, ¡°Thanks, Jas.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°Don¡®t mention it! You¡®ve always closed up for the night in the past, so I¡®ve been taking advantage of you. I¡®ll only feel better now by making up for it.¡± Serenity epted her friend¡®s offer and picked up the clothes she bought before bidding Jasmine goodbye and walking out of the bookstore. When she opened the car door, she ced the bag of clothes on the passenger seat and said to Zachary, ¡°You can head home first. I need to go to the market to buy some vegetables. If you can, cook some pasta while waiting. Otherwise , just wait till I get home.¡± Zachary nced at her e¨Cbike and said, ¡°Where¡®s your new car?¡± ¡°I left the houseter than usual today, so I was afraid of getting stuck in traffic. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. That¡®s why I took the bike.¡± Serenity put on her helmet and said, ¡°I¡®m leaving.¡± Without waiting for Zachary to reply, Serenity rode the bike away. Zachary was left speechless. Serenity did things in a hurry sometimes, which was a contrast to Zachary¡®s calmness, Looking at the bag of clothes on the passenger seat, Zachary took it and rummaged through. He noticed they were menswear. He frowned and thought, ¡®Who did she buy these for?¡® Zachary checked the size and noticed that all of them matched his and they were ck in color. Could they be for him? His displeasure vanished after some thought. Zachary saw Jasmineing out of the store and greeted Jasmine with a nod before he drove away. As soon as Zachary left, Shawn arrived. Jasmine was startled when she saw her cousin. She stretched out her hand and pulled on Shawn¡®s beard.¡± Shawn, I haven¡®t seen you in a while. Why did you grow such a long beard? You should shave it off. Don¡®t grow a beard at such a young age. You¡®ll look old! ¡°Have you been very busy and tired recently? You look so haggard and fatigued. It¡®s good to be hardworking , but don¡®t overwork yourself. After all, your body is a temple. You have to take care of your health.¡± ¡°I¡®m fine, but I¡®m a little busy with work.¡± Shawn actually grew his beard for Serenity¡¯s sake. It was not a long beard anyway. Jasmine was just surprised because Shawn usually had a clean¨Cshaven face. ¡°Jas, Serenity¡®s not here?¡± Shawn asked casually when he saw that his cousin was alone in the store. ¡°Serenity went home early to cook up a feast for Mr. York as a token of appreciation for helping her tremendously. Are you looking for Serenity ? You can tell me what it¡®s about and I can ry the message.¡± ¡°It¡®s nothing. I¡®m just asking. Serenity said she wanted to treat me to a meal, but I don¡®t know when she¡®ll fulfill her promise.¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°You¡®re both close friends, so ordering takeout for you is also considered treating you to a meal.¡± Shawn was silent. He wanted to eat alone with Serenity. ¡°Jas, Serenity and her husband married at first sight. Do you think their rtionship willst?¡± Serenity was Shawn¡®s first crush. Although he was a little younger than Serenity, he believed he could take good care of her. When he found out Serenity got hitched, he was so lost and could not bear to let her go. Thus, he hoped and looked forward to Serenity getting a divorce. ¡°Mr.York is callous, but he treats Serenity well. They should feel some spark between them after living together for a while. If it really doesn¡®t work out, they¡®ll divorce half a yearter since the two of them signed an agreement.¡± Chapter 125 Chapter 125 Chapter 125 Jasmine looked at her cousin suspiciously and asked,¡± Shawn, why are you asking about this?¡± Shawn would not admit his feelings for Serenity and that he was looking forward to Serenity¡®s divorce, so he lied.¡± I just care about Serenity. I don¡®t mean anything else. Serenity is a nice girl. If her husband doesn¡®t treat her well, it¡®ll be better to get a divorce sooner so she can find a man who will appreciate her. That way, she can live a good life.¡± ¡°That¡®s true. Serenity is great! I believe Mr.York will fall in love with her. He might even fall for her sooner than the other way round!¡± Jasmine only wished the best for her friend. Shawn¡®s heart ached. He could not tell his cousin that he had a crush on Serenity because he was afraid Jasmine would tell his mother. Not to mention, Shawn was a little younger than Serenity. Even if Serenity were to divorce, his mother would never ept Serenity as a daughter¨Cinw. Before Shawn had full confidence in pursuing Serenity, he was careful to conceal his feelings from others. The sun set over the ocean in the west. The sky quietly darkened as night fell. Back in Brynfield, Serenity was bustling about the kitchen. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. The aroma of food wafted out from time to time, attracting Zachary to the kitchen door. He wanted to help, but Serenity said she would do it all by herself since she was treating him to dinner and declined his help. He was watching TV in the hall but felt bored, so he might as well watch his wife cook. Zachary looked at Serenity¡®s graceful movements with a deep and gentle gaze. Even though he had not noticed these changes in himself, he felt Serenity possessed many strengths. ¡°Serenity,¡± Zachary called out suddenly as a thought popped into his head. Serenity turned her head to look at him while she continued to cook and asked, ¡°Speak your mind, Mr. York.¡± ¡°You¡®ve taken good care of those few potted nts on the balcony. Can you spare me one to bring to the office so I can put it on my desk?¡± Serenity replied matter¨Cof¨C factly, ¡°That pot is rather big. If you put it in the office, it¡®s best not to put it on the table as it¡®ll take up too much space. Just pick a spot in the office and ce it there.¡± ¡°But I want to put it on my desk. I heard from my colleagues that the nt symbolizes fortune, so I thought if I put it on my desk, it could help me attract fortune.¡± ¡°Then, you might as well buy a lucky cat and put it on your desk.¡± Serenity scooped up the stir¨Cfried vegetables and transferred them onto the te while saying, ¡°If you want to put it on your desk, I can give you a miniature tree handicraft. It¡®s not big, so it won¡®t take up much space. It looks good and has a meaningful symbolism.¡± Zachary spoke in such a big roundabout way because he wanted his wife to give him the handicrafts she made. His wife fell into his trap willingly, and he dly yed along ¡°Do you have any in stock? Your handicrafts are intricate. Nana loves them so much that she puts them in the most conspicuous ces in the house. Whenever anyone asks, she¡®ll just sing praises of you.¡± Nana praised Serenity highly, so much so she became Zachary¡®s wife. ¡°I do have some in stock, but they¡®re all orders for my customers. I won¡®t have to rush in giving it to you since we live together. I¡®ll pass you a miniature tree tomorrow. Do you also want a lucky cat?¡± Zachary did not mind as long as Serenity was willing to give him her handmade crafts. He would not steal from her customers. ¡°Can you make a lucky cat?¡± ¡°Yup.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Then I¡®ll be greedy for once and ask for a lucky cat.¡± Callum did not have a lucky cat, and now Zachary had one item more than Callum. ¡°If your colleagues like them, please send them the link to my online store to support my business!¡± After a moment of silence, Zachary said, ¡°Many of my colleagues already know about your online store because Callum rmended it to them.¡± Callum stole Zachary¡®s opportunity and took the lead. Chapter 126 Chapter 126 Chapter 126 Zachary was in dismay. However, on second thought, Callum rmending Serenity¡®s handicrafts would only mean more money for Serenity. Since Serenity was his wife, he could still reap some benefits from it. With this in mind, Zachary no longer felt too depressed about it. When Serenity finished cooking, she brought all of the dishes and ced them on the table. The couple took their seats and had dinner together. Zachary was in a good mood and ate with much gusto. He had to admit that Serenity had great cooking skills and he was blessed to have her. After the meal, Serenity washed the dishes and picked up the bag of clothes from the couch. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She retrieved the clothes from the bag and handed them to Zachary. ¡°Mr.York, try these two sets of clothes and see if they fit? ¡°You¡®ve been of great help to me, so I think treating you to a meal isn¡®t enough. That¡®s why I bought you two sets of new clothes and ties to match. They¡®re all in ck, your favorite color.¡± Zachary had guessed long ago that these were for him, but he did not show it. He took over the clothes trom Serenity and asked while looking at her, ¡°How do you know what my size is?¡± ¡°I asked Nana.¡± Zachary left it at that. ¡°Do you want to try it on?¡± ¡°No, they¡®ll fit.¡± Serenity chose the color he liked. ¡°Just ask me next time if you¡®re unsure what to buy.¡± Zachary thought to himself, ¡®Don¡®t ask Nana. If she finds out, who knows what kind of tricks she¡®ll pull behind my back?¡® ¡°You¡®re busy with work, so I don¡®t want to bother you,¡± Serenity replied. Zachary was without a word. He was busy and did not like her asking him about menial things. ¡°Mr. York, it¡®s still early, so let¡®s go for a walk. Speaking of which, I haven¡®t walked around the neighborhood yet after moving here for a while.¡± Zachary hesitated before agreeing to her suggestion. He was also not familiar with Brynfield. His housekeeper was the one who helped him buy this unit in the first ce. Then, for the first time, the couple went out for a walk together. Zachary was calm in nature and a man of few words. Moreover, they were not like other couples who married for love. When they went downstairs for a stroll around the neighborhood , neither of them spoke after walking for a while. After what seemed like a long time, Serenity found a topic to talk about and asked, ¡°Mr. York, how far is your hometown from the city?¡± Serenity had not been to Zachary¡®s hometown , but she heard from Grandma May that they lived in the suburbs. Since they signed the agreement, Serenity was mentally prepared for a divorce at any time. Thus, she did not care much about her husband¡®s hometown and did not bother to visit. It was just too awkward to keep walking in silence, so she thought of this topic to kill time. ¡°With smooth traffic, it¡®ll take less than an hour by car. It¡®s not far, but it¡®s not that close either.¡± The Yorks also owned many vis in major high¨Cend neighborhoods in the city. They had houses everywhere. They would only go back to the main residence on asion ¡°Nana mentioned that your family also has farnd that grows a lot of crops.¡± ¡°Yeah,¡± Zachary hummed. That was true. Serenity did not probe further knowing that what Grandma May said was the truth. The Yorks were just ordinary farmers. Thus, Serenity knew that she did not marry up the socialdder because she and Zachary stood in the same social ss. Chapter 127 Chapter 127 Chapter 127 A lot of people were taking a stroll in the neighborhood. Most of them were parents bringing their children out for walks while others included young couples holding hands intimately. Despite seeing how affectionate other couples were, Serenity and Zachary just walked side by side, without taking the initiative to extend their hand to the other. However , many people turned to look at them because they were a good-looking couple. Finally, Serenity stopped by a children¡¯s yground and said to the man beside her, ¡°Let¡¯s sit here to watch the kids y.¡± Serenity liked children. She loved her nephew, Sonny. Zachary did not speak and followed her silently to sit on a stone bench. ¡°If Sonny was here, he¡¯d definitely have a good time.¡± Zachary hummed in response. Serenity tilted her head to look at him. Zachary felt weird that she was looking at him like that, so he asked her defensively, ¡°Why are you looking at me like this?¡± ¡°You look exquisitely handsome, so I thought of soothing my eyes by taking a good look at you.¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. ¡°Mr. York, you¡¯re good-looking and capable, which means you have really good genes. If you have children in the future, they¡¯ll definitely be smart.¡± ¡°You want to have children with me?¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Nana kept saying I should just jump your bones so she could have a great-granddaughter.¡± Hearing this, Zachary quietly moved his butt to pull away from Serenity. Serenity did not notice this subtle movement and continued, ¡°I know you don¡¯t have feelings for me. I don¡¯t have feelings for you either, so we¡¯re just a couple without any foundation of love. Even if I were to jump you, it wouldn¡¯t feel right as we don¡¯t share any emotional attachment. It¡¯ll be more like hiring a gigolo. All that¡¯s left is to pay you for your service.¡± Zactiary was at a loss for words. ¡°We won¡¯t have children. Let Nana urge Callum and the rest,¡± she added. ¡°Would they not have children?¡± Zachary pondered. He tell ufortable when he heard what Serenity had to say about having kids, but he did not refute her and pursed his lips. ¡°Mr.York, do you suspect that I¡¯m a conniving woman?¡± ¡®Can you be any more direct?¡¯ Zachary thought sarcastically and remained silent. ¡°Actually, I did have a motive in marrying you, Mr.York. It¡¯s because you have a house. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. If I marry you, I can move in and live with you for free. That way, I can save on rent.¡± ¡°I know.¡± That was why he did not have a good first impression of her. Zachary married her reluctantly because of his Nana. ¡°You knew?¡± Serenity tilted her head to look at him again with admiration in her eyes. ¡°You¡¯re really smart, Mr.York. Your eyes are so sharp that it makes me feel like you can read my thoughts when you look at me like that.¡± Zachary looked at her and said, ¡°I can¡¯t read your thoughts, so I don¡¯t know why you¡¯re talking about this now.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no reason for it. I just thought that we don¡¯t talk very often. You won¡¯t take the initiative to chat either, so I have to find amon topic to talk about to reduce the awkwardness.¡± Chapter 128 Chapter 128 Chapter 128 Zachary was speechless again. He had no idea what he should talk with her about. The young couples around them were newlyweds and behaving intimately , interlocking their fingers as they walked together. The couples with children were focused on their kids, so they had more things to talk about; unlike them, who had neither feelings nor children. It was an onerous task for them to chat. Seeing that Zachary was at a loss for words again, Serenity smiled and stood up, before pulling him up too.¡± Let¡¯s go back so you won¡¯t feel ufortable, wondering if I¡¯ll jump you at any moment.¡± ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re a girl!¡± ¡°So what if I¡¯m a girl? I¡¯m just saying¡­¡± Serenity pulled him away, but she only pulled on his sleeve without touching his hand for fear he might wash his hands a hundred times when he got home. ¡°Didn¡¯t you see the trending story two days ago? It was about Ms. Stone and Mr.York. Ms.Stone really likes him, so she confessed to him and wooed him openly. Men will pursue the women they like, and women will do the same because everyone¡¯s in pursuit of true love. ¡°I admire Ms.Stone for that. She had indirectly helped me. Although she doesn¡¯t know who I am, I¡¯ll silently pray for her and wish her the best of luck in pursuing her true love. I hope she seeds and gets to marry Mr.York. She¡¯s pursuing Mr.York rather aggressively now. Once she¡¯s with him, I¡¯m certain Mr.York will spoil her silly.¡± Elisa unknowingly suppressed the ¡°ungrateful granddaughter ¡°trending story and reduced the impact the tweet had on Serenity and Liberty. Thus, Serenity had a good impression of Elisa. Moreover, Elisa¡¯s bold character made Serenity admire her even more. When Zachary heard what his wife just said, he almost rolled his eyes. He thought silently, ¡®If you find out that Mr.York is your husband, will you still say such a thing?¡¯ ¡°Mr.York doesn¡¯t like Ms. Stone,¡± Zachary exined himself, lest Serenity tried to pair him and Elisa up. ¡°Apart from falling in love at first sight, most people won¡¯t feel that they¡¯ll fall in love with their other half. Love is about pursuing each other and slowly getting to know one another. Once they grow closer, mutual admiration and feelings will surely develop gradually. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Feelings need to be cultivated. Mr.York and Ms.Stone are a good match for each other since they¡¯re from the same social ss. If the two of them can get together, they¡¯ll certainly be a match made in heaven!¡± ¡°I work in York Corporation. I know that our boss always brings his bodyguards everywhere and won¡¯t allow young women to approach him. He doesn¡¯t like young women. Besides, ourpany and the Stone Group aren¡¯t exactly on good terms, so how could our boss be with Ms. Stone?¡± After marriage, Serenity had never asked about Zachary¡¯s position in hispany and how much he was earning monthly. After all, they were just husband and wife byw and might notst long, so why bother? Of course, if Zachary raised the subject about his job, Serenity would dly gossip about what kind of person his boss was. ¡°Have you met your boss? You share the samest name as him, so it¡¯s easy for others to mistake you as your boss¡¯s rtive.¡± Serenity smiled and added, ¡°Jasmine suspected you¡¯re rted to that particr Mr. York several times, but I told her that she has read too many novels for her to mix up fiction with reality. The female lead always ends up marrying a billionaire at first sight. ¡°Every man must be a billionaire if it was that easy to marry one! Zachary murmured in his heart, ¡®Ms. Sox has a good eye¡­¡¯ Jasmine was no doubt from a rich family. To ordinary people, the Soxes were rich and were considered a local tycoon. They could earn hundreds of thousands a month by collecting rent monthly. It was only because the Soxes had such a background that Aunt Rachel could marry into an affluent family. Zachary made a mental note that if he were to attend a dinner party again, he would have to steer clear of the Soxes and the Lowes as he did not want them to expose his identity to Serenity. He was the head of the Yorks who were the richest family in Wiltspoon, and he wanted to reveal his true identity to Serenity himself without anyone else getting in way. ¡°Our boss is very busy. It¡¯s hard for me to see him unless it¡¯s for a meeting. After all, I¡¯m not in the top management of thepany. Even if I were to attend a meeting, I¡¯ll be seated at the end of the table. My eyesight isn¡¯t great either, so I can¡¯t see his face clearly.¡± Chapter 129 Chapter 129 Chapter 129 ¡°You¡®re a manager in thepany, yet you barely have the chance to meet your boss. Your boss is truly¡­ unattainable and mysterious,¡± Serenity said. There were no photos of Mr.York on the inte. Mr.York was followed around by a security squad. Last time at the dinner party, there were so many tall and brawny bodyguards surrounding him to the point where Serenity and Jasmine could not catch a glimpse of Mr.York¡®s face even when they tiptoed. Now knowing that Zachary who was a white¨Ccor employee in York Corporation and yet he rarely saw Mr.York, Serenity felt much better about herself. Zachary did not carry on with the conversation. He did not care what others say about him and acted ording to his own wishes. The couple chatted about Mr.York and returned to their block Zachary¡®s bodyguards wandered nearby. Although they did not follow Zachary and Serenity closely, the guards were always watching the young couple and kept them within range of vision, wherever they went. Of course, Serenity did not know that she was being watched this whole time. Serenity turned her head and inadvertently saw a bodyguard wandering not far away. She thought he looked familiar, so she stopped and said to Zachary,¡± That man looks very familiar.¡± Zachary was stunned. That was his bodyguard, Jim. Jim was also surprised when he saw Serenity and Zachary looking right at him. He quickly regained his senses and walked over as if nothing was wrong. ¡°Aren¡®t you the driver from that night?¡± Serenity recalled when she had seen him. This familiar¨Clooking man was the driver who sent Zachary home when Zachary was drunk that night. ¡°Yup, that¡®s me,¡± Jim replied. Serenity had good eyesight and memory. ¡°Do you also live around here?¡± ¡°Yeah, but I¡®m renting the ce. Usually I¡®d drive for the car¨Chailing service, and asionally I¡®m a driver for hire when they¡®re under the influence.¡± ¡°Oh, okay.¡± Although Serenity remembered this driver, she was unfamiliar with him and only greeted him today since they had met previously. She did not ponder on this matter. Zachary nced at Jim, who instantly understood the meaning behind his boss¡®s look. In the future, Jim would have to be discreet while tailing Zachary in public so as not to be seen by Serenity because it would indirectly reveal his identity. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. If that happened, Jim would not be able to afford the consequences. Back at home, Serenity sat on the swing out of habit while Zachary went back to his room. They did not talk again that night. The next day, Zachary was about to leave when Serenity was just done making breakfast. ¡°Mr.York, you haven¡®t had breakfast yet.¡± Zachary tugged at his tie. Serenity noticed that was the tie she gifted him. She thought he would not like or even wear it. To her surprise, he wore it today. ¡°I have an early meeting today, and I can¡®t bete. I¡¯m afraid of getting stuck in traffic, so I need to leave early. I won¡®t have breakfast at home today and will order takeoutter.¡± ¡°I¡®ve already made it. Don¡®t order takeout. I¡®ll pack it for you so you can take it to your office.¡± Zachary hesitated for a while as he could not bear to reject her kind offer, especially since her breakfasts made every day were delectable. Serenity brought out an insted lunch box and she filled it with sandwiches, a hard¨Cboiled egg, and some sd. She covered it before handing it over to Zachary. ¡°Eat it when you get to the office. Don¡®t work on an empty stomach.¡± ¡°Okay.¡° Chapter 130 Chapter 130 Chapter 130 Zachary finally felt the benefits of being married. He left for work with the insted lunch box. While on the way to the office in the car, he savored the breakfast that his wife prepared for him with love. He ate it with much gusto and felt satisfied. The driver and the bodyguard who sat in the same car as Zachary were a little puzzled. The breakfast Serenity prepared was extremely simple, yet the picky Zachary relished it. Perhaps, Serenity¡¯s cooking skills were excellent. After Zachary left, Serenity routinely called her sister and left the house knowing that her sister was fine. When she got out, it was already rush hour, so there was traffic congestion which eventually got heavier as she was halfway into her journey. Many who were rushing for work were feeling utterly anxious till they almost went berserk. Elisa Stone was one of them. While her brother and sister-inw were behaving lovey dovey during breakfast , Elisa quietly slipped out of the house and secretly packed some breakfast for Zachary. She had the chef at home specially make it. Then, she cut arge bunch of fresh flowers from her garden and wrapped them up. Carrying the bouquet and the breakfast prepared with love, Elisa left for Zachary¡¯s office. She wanted to arrive before he entered the building, so she could stop his car the old-school way and hand him the breakfast she had carefully prepared. Although everyone including her sister-inw persuaded her to forget about Zachary, Elisa was unwilling to give up without a fight. If Elisa could forget Zachary, then she would have done so a long time ago. However, after all this time she still could not bring herself to forget him, she thought of giving it a shot. She would only give up if she failed to win over his heart after three to five years. Presently, the traffic reached a gridlock. As she watched the fleeting minutes, Elisa grew more anxious. If she continued to be stuck, Zachary would have started work by the time she arrived at York Corporation. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Then, it would be for naught to brace through the morning traffic. No, Elisa could not wait like this. Elisa called her bodyguard and informed him of the location of her car parked by the side of the road. She asked him to bring the spare key from home to drive her car back After the phone call, the traffic finally inched ahead. Elisa took the opportunity to turn to the side of the road and parked it in front of a store. After taking a photo and sending it to the bodyguard, Elisa grabbed the bouquet and lunch box from the car and went to the roadside to stop a bike. Elisa managed to stop Serenity, who was just passing by. Serenity braked and looked at Elisa. She asked in a friendly tone, ¡°Hey prettydy, what¡¯s the matter?¡± Elisa looked at Serenity and felt that she looked rather familiar, but when she did a double take, she saw a stranger in Serenity. Elisa even dared to pursue Zachary openly, so she did not feel any guilt or fear for suddenly hailing a stranger¡¯s bike. She said frankly, ¡°Can you give me a ride? The traffic is horrible today, and I¡¯m in a hurry.¡± Seeing that Elisa was holding a bouquet and an insted lunch box, Serenity made a wild guess of what Elisa was about to do and smiled. ¡°Where are you heading to?¡± ¡°York Corporation.¡± ¡°Come on, I¡¯ll take you there.¡± York Corporation was her husband¡¯s workce, so Serenity wanted to see the sixty-eight-story office building up close. It was the spot for the Wiltspoon business circle. ¡°Thank you!¡± Elisa was very fond of Serenity not only because Serenity promised to give her a ride, but due to a sense of familiarity as if they had known each other for decades. However, they were only strangers. This was the first time Elisa felt this way about someone she had just met. Serenity took out a spare helmet from the trunk and handed it to Elisa. ¡°Wear this helmet to avoid being blocked by traffic police.¡± Elisa took the helmet and put it on. Serenity then restarted her e-bike and rode along the non -motorized vehiclene with Elisa behind her, heading straight to York Corporation. Chapter 131 Chapter 131 Chapter 131 Serenity was unaffected by the traffic congestion as she rode her electric bike. It took more than ten minutes to arrive at York Corporation. She stopped the bike and turned to Elisa and said, ¡°We¡®re here, Miss.¡± Elisa returned the helmet to Serenity and thanked her. ¡°It¡®s just a small favor. No need to thank me.¡± Elisa looked at her and asked, ¡°May I know what¡®s your name? You look really familiar for some reason. Have we met before?¡± ¡°Myst name is Hunt. I also quite like you, Miss. Unfortunately, we¡®ve never met before.¡± Beautiful women had always left an impression on her, but she had no recollection of thisdy. ¡°Yourst name is Hunt? Oh, I remember now. There was news about an unfilial granddaughter that went viral before. The granddaughter¡®sst name was also Hunt, and there was a photo attached as well. I think you look a bit like one of the little girls in the photo. Was that you?¡± The ¡°unfilial granddaughter¡± news had left a deep impression on Elisa, and she remembered the childhood photo of Serenity and her sister that the Hunt family released. Back then, she not only scolded this trending news for distracting theizens¡® attention, but also the Hunt sisters for being unfilial. Unexpectedly , when the truth was revealed, she scolded the Hunt family instead. Her mother had told her off, saying that she had no patience and critical thinking skills despite being in her twenties. She simply went along and scolded the Hunt sisters because of a one¨Csided story. Since she was rebuking the Hunt sisters at home, her mother got curious about the news and wanted to read about it. Unfortunately, after the tables turned, the Hunt family was overwhelmed by theizens¡®mbast and quickly swiped clean all their posts. It was clear that the Hunt family had connections of their own. N?velDrama.Org owns this. The eldest son of a Hunt¡®s rtive was a manager in apany under Stone Group. After the situation turned one¨Ceighty, the majority of angryizens went after the Hunt family and dug up John¡®s identity. They even went to Stone Group¡®s official page to leave messages, asking the headquarters to dismiss John. Serenity did not expect to be recognized through a mere childhood photo of hers. Thinking of how she now had the upper hand, she smiled and admitted it. ¡°You have both good eyes and a good memory, Miss.¡± ¡°There¡®s no way I won¡®t remember you. The viral news about you divided the attention of manyizens. Even though the situation is reversed now, it¡®s still trending on a lot of news sites.¡± Serenity¡®s eyes shed at Elisa¡®s words, and she asked tentatively, ¡°Miss, are you the daughter of the Stone family?¡± Elisa praised her, ¡°You¡®re really smart. You got it in one.¡± Serenityughed too. ¡°That¡®s such a coincidence. I also have to thank you for stepping in and suppressing the trending search. It¡®s thanks to you that my sister and I didn¡®t suffer much. You must be here to deliver breakfast to Mr. York, right?¡± ¡°Yep.¡± The two got along rather well, and for the first time, Elisa chatted pleasantly with a person she had just met. ¡°Then you should hurry inside , Ms. Stone. It¡®s already eight. Mr. York will be hungry if you don¡®t deliver the food.¡± Elisa looked at the time and said, ¡°He probably hasn¡®t arrived yet since there¡®s a traffic jam. I was trying to reach thepany before he arrived. Fortunately, you gave me a ride.¡± ¡°No problem. You helped me with that incident of mine, so I¡®m grateful to you.¡± Serenity was in disbelief that fate worked so mysteriously. They were frompletely different worlds, but they ended up crossing paths. Elisa smiled. ¡°You don¡®t need to thank me. I did it for myself.¡± At that moment, Zachary¡®s motorcade was approaching from afar. Elisa was exceptionally familiar with her beloved¡®s car. As soon as she saw the procession of luxury cars approaching, she stopped chatting with Serenity. She quickly took out her business card and shoved it to Serenity. ¡°Ms. Hunt, since you helped me today, you can just call me if you need anything in the future. I¡®ll definitely do my best to help you.¡± Chapter 132 Chapter 132 Chapter 131 Serenity was unaffected by the traffic congestion as she rode her electric bike. It took more than ten minutes to arrive at York Corporation. She stopped the bike and turned to Elisa and said, ¡°We¡®re here, Miss.¡± Elisa returned the helmet to Serenity and thanked her. ¡°It¡®s just a small favor. No need to thank me.¡± Elisa looked at her and asked, ¡°May I know what¡®s your name? You look really familiar for some reason. Have we met before?¡± ¡°Myst name is Hunt. I also quite like you, Miss. Unfortunately, we¡®ve never met before.¡± Beautiful women had always left an impression on her, but she had no recollection of thisdy. ¡°Yourst name is Hunt? Oh, I remember now. There was news about an unfilial granddaughter that went viral before. The granddaughter¡®sst name was also Hunt, and there was a photo attached as well. I think you look a bit like one of the little girls in the photo. Was that you?¡± The ¡°unfilial granddaughter¡± news had left a deep impression on Elisa, and she remembered the childhood photo of Serenity and her sister that the Hunt family released. Back then, she not only scolded this trending news for distracting theizens¡® attention, but also the Hunt sisters for being unfilial. Unexpectedly , when the truth was revealed, she scolded the Hunt family instead. Her mother had told her off, saying that she had no patience and critical thinking skills despite being in her twenties. She simply went along and scolded the Hunt sisters because of a one¨Csided story. Since she was rebuking the Hunt sisters at home, her mother got curious about the news and wanted to read about it. Unfortunately, after the tables turned, the Hunt family was overwhelmed by theizens¡®mbast and quickly swiped clean all their posts. It was clear that the Hunt family had connections of their own. The eldest son of a Hunt¡®s rtive was a manager in apany under Stone Group. After the situation turned one¨Ceighty, the majority of angryizens went after the Hunt family and dug up John¡®s identity. They even went to Stone Group¡®s official page to leave messages, asking the headquarters to dismiss John. Serenity did not expect to be recognized through a mere childhood photo of hers. Thinking of how she now had the upper hand, she smiled and admitted it. ¡°You have both good eyes and a good memory, Miss.¡± ¡°There¡®s no way I won¡®t remember you. The viral news about you divided the attention of manyizens. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Even though the situation is reversed now, it¡®s still trending on a lot of news sites.¡± Serenity¡®s eyes shed at Elisa¡®s words, and she asked tentatively, ¡°Miss, are you the daughter of the Stone family?¡± Elisa praised her, ¡°You¡®re really smart. You got it in one.¡± Serenityughed too. ¡°That¡®s such a coincidence. I also have to thank you for stepping in and suppressing the trending search. It¡®s thanks to you that my sister and I didn¡®t suffer much. You must be here to deliver breakfast to Mr. York, right?¡± ¡°Yep.¡± The two got along rather well, and for the first time, Elisa chatted pleasantly with a person she had just met. ¡°Then you should hurry inside , Ms. Stone. It¡®s already eight. Mr. York will be hungry if you don¡®t deliver the food.¡± Elisa looked at the time and said, ¡°He probably hasn¡®t arrived yet since there¡®s a traffic jam. I was trying to reach thepany before he arrived. Fortunately, you gave me a ride.¡± ¡°No problem. You helped me with that incident of mine, so I¡®m grateful to you.¡± Serenity was in disbelief that fate worked so mysteriously. They were frompletely different worlds, but they ended up crossing paths. Elisa smiled. ¡°You don¡®t need to thank me. I did it for myself.¡± At that moment, Zachary¡®s motorcade was approaching from afar. Elisa was exceptionally familiar with her beloved¡®s car. As soon as she saw the procession of luxury cars approaching, she stopped chatting with Serenity. She quickly took out her business card and shoved it to Serenity. ¡°Ms. Hunt, since you helped me today, you can just call me if you need anything in the future. I¡®ll definitely do my best to help you.¡± Chapter 133 Chapter 133 Chapter 133 Elisa blocked the entrance to the building, so the driver had no choice but to stop the car. ¡°Mr.Zachary, shall I go down and pull MsStone away?¡± The driver turned his head and asked for Zachary¡®s instruction. After a moment of silence, Zachary wound down the car window. As soon as Elisa saw his window down, she was overjoyed and immediately bounced over, carrying the bouquet of flowers and an insted lunch box. ¡°Zachary.¡± She finally met the man she had been longing for. Although she often came here to profess her love, the truth was she had not seen him in person for a long time. L1 She missed him so much! He still had the same cold look, but he was still the most handsome man in her mind. Her gaze trickled down to his tightly pursed lips, and she felt the urge to give him a kiss or two. She wondered how soft his lips would be. Elisa looked at Zachary like he was her prey and that made him frown ¡°Ms.Stone.¡± ¡°Zachary, just call me Elisa.¡± Elisa smiled brightly and stuffed the insted lunch box through the car window to him and said, ¡°I specially brought you breakfast. Eat it while it¡®s hot. Also, this bouquet is for you.¡± Zachary did not ept the lunch box, let alone the bouquet. He was a man, so he did not like flowers. ¡°The traffic congestion was heavy today. How did you get here so early?¡± He just wanted to know how Elisa and Serenity met. Hearing his question, Elisa was like an open book and said, ¡°I¡®m pretty smart. I parked in front of someone¡®s store and told my bodyguard toe over and drive it back. Then, I stopped someone on an electric bike and came all the way here unhindered.¡± So that was it. That was how they met. ¡°Zachary, it¡®s really amazing. I raised my hand to stop a random person, but she turned out to be that ¡®unfilial granddaughter¡® who went viral on the news recently. Her name is Serenity Hunt. She¡®s actually quite nice, and we hit it off quite nicely.¡± Zachary spat in his heart, ¡®Elisa is the most famously unruly and contemptuousdy in Wiltspoon, but she actually hit it off with Serenity. However, when he thought of Serenity¡®s character, he felt that it was only normal for Elisa to like her and befriend her. ¡°Drive!¡± Zacharymanded the driver with his deep voice since he had his question answered. ¡°Zachary, keep the flowers. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Also, remember to eat breakfast. I rushed over here just to give this to you. I made it with love for¡­¡± The car roared ahead and Elisa was left behind. She was only able to throw the bouquet of flowers into the car and not the lunch box. After all, the food would spill all over the car if she threw it in and that would definitely anger Zachary. It was a pleasant surprise that Zachary spoke to her today, so she did not want to make him angry. However, the bouquet of flowers she threw into the car was soon thrown out by him. The flowersnded on the ground pitifully Elisa tried running after the car, but she could not catch up and had no choice but to give up. She did not dare to barge directly into York Corporation for fear that Zachary would instruct security to carry her and throw her out to the roadside. That would be humiliating. When Zachary walked into the office building, he met his administrative executive, Josh. Josh nced at his boss¡®s hand, which was empty today. He leaned in and teased in a whisper, ¡°Why did the married man not bring his made¨Cwith¨Clove breakfast to eat in the office today?¡± Chapter 134 Chapter 134 Chapter 134 ¡°I ate in the car.¡± Josh was speechless. ¡°By the way, I saw something interesting earlier. Do you want to hear about it?¡± Zachary gave him a look and walked ahead. His handsome face remained expressionless, and his lips pursed into a line as he stayed silent. Josh hated that attitude, but he could not stop his chatty mouth from saying, ¡°I arrived early and just so happened saw your missus send Ms. Stone here, so I stopped to figure out what was going on. ¡°Before your car arrived at thepany, your missus and Ms.Stone chatted rather amicably. Boss, your wife and admirer seem to like each other and are ready to be good friends. What do you think of it?¡± Zachary could not be bothered to even look at Josh, so he simply entered the elevator , leaving behind the chatty administrative executive. Josh did not get angry either and chuckled in his heart,¡® This will definitely be the drama¨Cof¨Cthe¨Cyear.¡® He really wanted to know what Serenity Hunt would do if his boss¡®s identity was revealed one day. Remembering how Elisa ran over to send him flowers and breakfast again, Zachary called Clive and said coldly, ¡°Mr.Stone, manage your sister well, or don¡®t me me for being impolite.¡± There was a limit to his patience. Clive had a headache. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Mr.York, Elisa didn¡®t do anything out of line either. She just likes you and is trying to pursue you. I¡®ve advised her countless times, but what am I supposed to do? Break her legs?¡± He really could not do anything about his sister. Even if he got people to watch her, she would find a way to lose them. ¡°Zachary, you and I are about the same age. I¡®ve been married for several years, but you only have one suitor. Since my sister is the first one to woo you, just¡­ be patient with her.¡± Zachary hung up immediately. He knew what kind of person Elisa was. Even if he ignored her or acted rudely toward her, she would bounce back up. Unless she actually broke her legs, not even ruining her reputation would make her give up. Clive¡®s expression fell after the call ended. He could not help but call his sister and lecture her again. Elisa was already on her way home by taxi. ¡°Clive, I¡®m on my way home. I didn¡®t do anything shocking today. My IQ is limited, so I can¡®t think of anything extraordinary.¡± ¡°¡­If you would spend the effort you put into chasing after Zachary to apany Mom instead, she¡®d be so much happier.¡± ¡°I do spend time with Mom, but she¡®s suffering from an illness of the mind, which requires medicine for the heart. It¡®s true that I¡®m her darling, but I¡®m not her medicine.¡± Audrey¡®s wish was to find her sister who had been separated for decades. Her sister had gone through many families in the system, and Audrey no longer knew where she could be. All Audrey wanted was to reunite with her sister in this lifetime. ¡°By the way, I need your help with something,¡± Elisa asked Clive. ¡°What is it?¡± As long as she did not ask him to help her find a way to pursue Zachary, he was quite willing to help his sister. ¡°I met a girl earlier, Serenity Hunt. She made quite a good impression on me, and we clicked pretty well. It¡®s about that online incident. As I told you before, Serenity¡®s rtives went too far. Can you just dismiss that what¡®s ¨C his ¨C name Hunt guy? Don¡®t let him affect the reputation of our company.¡± Clive said indifferently, ¡°There¡®s no need for your brother to handle something trivial like this personally.¡± ¡°Did someone already get to him?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t do anything. He was probably already suspended from his duties.¡± His subordinates would handle the matter. John was only serving in a branchpany. Although he was capable , the incident blew up and revealed his true colors. Clive had no desire for a person like that. Chapter 135 Chapter 135 Chapter 135 ¡°Good. It¡®s best if they all lose their jobs and then get cursed to death by everyone. Let them have a taste of what Inte violence is like. They¡®repletely inhumane.¡± Although Elisa was a little unruly, she was still somewhat virtuous. Furthermore , she was very fond of Serenity, so she was willing to avenge Serenity. Think of it as returning the favor. ¡®After all, it¡®s because she sent me to York Corporation that I was able to see Zachary today. He even talked to me. ¡°Clive, I¡®m going home to apany Mom. You get back to work,¡± Elisa was done talking and hung up the phone. She did not want to take up more of her brother¡®s precious time. The old Stone residence was not far from the old York residence, but they were on different routes. If they were on the same route, Elisa would have blocked Zachary¡®s car on his way home. Well, Zachary rarely went back to the old York residence anyway, so it would be hard for her to block the road even if they were on the same path. As the second most powerful family in Wiltspoon, the old Stone residence was very well restored and spanned a huge area. The York residence was built in the style of a manor, and the Stone family followed suit to build their home the same way. In a magnificent hall, a middle¨Caged woman sat on the sofa while holding a photo in her hand. Her eyes stared stilly at the photo for a long time. Elisa walked into this scene and took the photo from her mother¡®s hand when she approached . She said, ¡°Mom, don¡®t keep staring at this photo all day. If Aunt is alive, we¡®ll definitely find her. Cheer up. Don¡®t be depressed and worried all the time.¡± Darrell brought over a ss of water. He heard what his daughter had to say and echoed, ¡°Elisa is right, honey. Don¡®t keep looking at the photo. We¡®ve arranged for many people to look for your sister. I believe we¡®ll get news about her soon.¡± He handed the ss to his wife. When the couple was young, they were busy with work and did not have much time to spend together. When Clive took over, Darrell retired and wanted to spend time with his wife as well as live out their old age peacefully. He did not expect his wife to be constantly depressed as ofte because of his sister in law whom he had never met. Darrell was worried and anxious for Audrey¡®s behavior, but there was nothing he could do. The two sisters had been separated for a long time, and his sister¨Cinw might have forgotten that she had a sister. She was handed over from one family to another, so no one knew which home shended in. The other half of the photo might not even be in her hands anymore. It was difficult to find someone by using just a picture. Audrey epted the ss of water handed to her by her husband, took a sip, and then retrieved the photo from her daughter¡®s hand. She put the ss down, carefully returned the photo back into an album, and closed it with a sigh. ¡°These days, I keep having nightmares of my sister being beaten and scolded. She had a miserable life.¡± ¡°That¡®s because you keep thinking about it all day.¡± Elisa sat down next to her mother and held thetter¡®s arm affectionately. ¡°Mom, the weather is still hot. I want to go to the beach for a vacation, so you should apany me. Let¡®s go out fishing and eat fresh seafood,¡± Elisa said sweetly. ¡°So you don¡®t have to go and block Zachary¡®s route every day?¡± Audrey nudged her daughter¡®s pretty nose at the change of subject and teased, ¡°I thought you¡®d be willing to give up on food and sleep just to block the gate of York Corporation every day.¡± ¡°The pursuit of true love can¡®t be aplished in a day or two. I also have to be filial to my mother. Come on, Mom. Come with me to the beach for a holiday , okay?¡± Darrell chimed in, ¡°Go out and take a break, honey. Don¡®t coop up at home with that photo all the time.¡± Ever since Audrey could afford it, she had never stopped looking for her only sister. However, decades passed without any results. Although her son took over and continued the search, Darrell did not hold out much hope.? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Chapter 136 Chapter 136 Chapter 136 Darrell did not even know if his sister-inw was dead or alive. ¡°Maybe we¡¯ll run into your sister or her children by chance if we go out on a vacation.¡± After a moment of silence , Audrey said, ¡°My sister was still so young when we separated. Women go through drastic changes from how they were when they were little. Even if I happen to meet her children, who knows if I¡¯ll be able to recognize them as my niece or nephews?¡± ¡°Come on, let¡¯s go for a holiday!¡± Not being able to brush off her daughter¡¯s thoughtfulness, Audrey roused her spirits and agreed to go on a beach vacation with Elisa. Seeing that her mother agreed, Elisa exchanged a nce with her father, then thought of other topics to talk to her mother about. As she chattered, she brought up today¡¯s events. She said happily, ¡°Mom, I saw Zachary today. He stopped the car and even wound down the window to talk to me. Unfortunately, the bouquet I stuffed into his car was thrown out by him.¡± Audrey was speechless, ¡°I also met a new friend. Her name is Serenity. For some reason, she gave me a familiar feeling the moment I saw her. It was as if I felt a sense of kinship with her. She even helped me, so I left her my name card.¡± Audrey asked, ¡°Was it that poor woman who was morally ckmailed by her rtives?¡± ¡°Yep, that¡¯s the one.¡± ¡°What a small world. The news about you two went viral at the same time, and out of the thousands of people, the person whose bike you stopped happened to be her. She also actually agreed to send you to York Corporation to chase after Zachary.¡± Audrey teased her daughter, ¡°What¡¯s even rarer is that you actually consider her a friend. Darrell, let¡¯s keep an eye on the skyter and see if there are any pigs flying. I can¡¯t believe your darling daughter actually made a friend.¡± ¡°Mom!¡± Elisa cried out, disgruntled. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with me making a friend? I just like Serenity. She gives me a sense of familiarity. She even supported me and encouraged me to pursue Zachary.¡± Audrey was also very helpless regarding her daughter¡¯s infatuation with Zachary. ¡°You would forget even yourst name when ites to Zachary.¡± However, she indeed admired Zachary. If her daughter did sessfully win him over, she would be overjoyed nheless. There were only a few outstanding men like Zachary, and the York family was outstanding too. If two of their families could be united by marriage, it would not only ease the discord between them, but also make her daughter happy for a lifetime. ¡°Bring Serenity back and introduce her to me when you¡¯re free another day.¡± Audrey said as she felt that her daughter had too few friends. It was rare for her daughter to make a friend, so she wanted to meet the girl who could make her daughter feel a sense of kinship at first sight. ¡°Sure. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. We¡¯ll have to see if she contacts me first. I¡¯ll bring her back to meet you when we be closer. Wait, no. Mom, you¡¯re making it sound as if I¡¯m bringing a girlfriend back to meet you. I¡¯m your daughter!¡± Audrey poked her daughter¡¯s head in amusement.¡° You¡¯re the one who got the wrong idea. Don¡¯t me it on me.¡± Elisa yfully stuck out her tongue. She might have to take the initiative to contact Serenity. However, there was no harm in that. Since she liked Serenity, she did not mind making the first move. It was just like how she loved Zachary. Since she loved him, she pursued him on her own ord and made her feelings known! Chapter 137 Chapter 137 Chapter 137 When Serenity got back to her store, she saw Shawn there. She smiled at and greeted him. ¡°Shawn, don¡®t you have work today?¡± Shawn looked at her with adoration hidden deep in his eyes and said, ¡°I worked overtimest night, so I can go in a littleter today. Howe you¡®rete today?¡± He asked seemingly casually, but in fact, he wanted to inquire about Serenity¡®s recent situation with her husband Jasmine said that Serenity¡®s husband had helped to suppress the trending search and even apanied her back to her hometown to collect evidence for the counterattack, so Serenity was grateful to him. Shawn thought, ¡®I also want to help Serenity, but she didn¡®t give me a chance to. I called her that day, but she didn¡®t answer the phone.¡® She had only sent him a message saying that she was fine afterward ¡°There was a prettydy asking for help on my way here. I waste because I lent her a hand. Oh, that smells good. What are you eating, Jasmine?¡± Serenity was nning on going to the cashier to sit down when she smelled the aroma. She spun on her heel and walked to the small kitchen. Shawn followed her, wanting to catch up to her and hug her in his arms. However, he had no guts to do so. He was not brazen enough to so much as flirt with her because he perceived his aplishments had yet to warrant such a bold act. He loved her and therefore he had to respect her. Even if he wanted to be close to her, hug her, or even kiss her, he had to suppress it desperately because she was now married. His heart clenched in pain at that thought. In Serenity¡®s eyes, he was just a younger brother. Even if she needed a man for a sh marriage, she would never consider him. When Jasmine remained silent, Shawn said to Serenity, ¡°I brought some food from home for you and Jas to eat.¡± He sent a loving breakfast to Serenity and Jasmine. The Lowe family was wealthy too, and the chef at home was from a five¨Cstar hotel. The family paid him handsomely to cook for them since his food was especially delicious. Furthermore, since all three of them were childhood friends, he was familiar with their preferences. ¡°Lucky me.¡± Serenity enjoyed with Jasmine the food brought by Shawn Shawn watched the twodies eat with relish, and he could not stop the grin forming at the corners of his mouth. He asked with a smile , ¡°Serenity , when are you free to invite me to a meal?¡± ¡°This Saturday. I¡®ll treat you to lunch. What do you want to eat? Jasmine, join us too. We don¡®t get much business during the weekend, so there¡®s no harm if we close the shop for one day. You guys will be nagged by your family about when you would get married if you stay home, so why not come out to eat together?¡± Jasmine readily agreed, ¡°Sure.¡± She was also afraid to stay at home and get an earful from her parents during the weekends. Her mother wanted her to marry into a rich family to enjoy glory and wealth like her aunt. She felt like her ears were about to fall off with how much her mother had been badgering her. Her father was slightly better, saying that it would be more appropriate to find a family with a backgroundparable to theirs, so no one was higher in status than the other. ¡°There¡®s a restaurant with good food next to Beans and Cream. The ce isn¡®t too upscale , but it¡®s not too bad either. The food is affordable, so business is booming. Let¡®s eat there. After lunch, we can go next door to Beans and Cream to enjoy a cup of coffee. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. After all, that¡®s the most high¨Css cafe in the city.¡± Thest time Serenity apanied her friend to a blind date at Beans and Cream, she felt that it had a pleasant ambiance, but she did not notice what shops were next to it. She wanted to treat Shawn to a meal, but he unexpectedly proposed that venue for lunch. Ne Chapter 138 Chapter 138 Chapter 138 Serenity replied breezily, ¡°Okay, it¡¯s settled then.¡± Shawn was pleased too. He was looking forward to Saturday arriving. Several cars suddenly stopped in front of the bookstore. Sawnn said, ¡°I¡¯ll go take a look.¡± He turned around and left. Soon, he returned and said to Serenity, ¡°It¡¯s your rtives.¡± Serenity had just finished eating. She wiped her mouth with a tissue and said, ¡°Since they¡¯re here, I guess I can¡¯t continue to be scared of them.¡± She was not surprised that those outrageous people found this ce. Thanks to the blessings of a majority of theizens, her uncles and cousins¡¯ jobs were exposed. They also had good connections, and the incident made the trending news twice, so it was easy for them to find Serenity and her sister. ¡°Serenity.¡± The Hunt family brothers entered, led by Mike. A total of eight of them came, all dressed in branded goods and holding a set of keys in their hands. They shook their keys from time to time as if the keys were made of gold. However, they looked rather exhausted. It seemed like Serenity¡¯s retaliation had hit them hard. They could not stand being scolded by the angryizens. Serenity did not inquire about her grandmother¡¯s situation in the hospital. A kind-hearted person had sent her a private message, telling her that her grandmother could not have peace in the hospital. Many people ran to the ward to criticize her, infuriating the shrewish old woman. The group of filial sons and grandsons were in the hospital, but they could not even protect a single patient. Heh! ¡°Oh, what brings all of you here at the same time? You even brought the whole party with you.¡± She had many cousin brothers, but none of her cousin sisters came to the city. At the beginning when there was a lot of fake material exposed to the inte to garner attention, the uninformedizens used their words as guns aimed at Serenity and her sister. In the entire Hunt family, not a single person stood up for the sisters. Serenity walked to the cashier¡¯s desk, sat down on a chair, and took out her tools for crafting as well as the materials she had prepared. Then, she started working on the miniature tree she promised to give to Zachary, as well as the lucky cat. ¡°I don¡¯t have that many stools in my shop, so I won¡¯t tell you to sit. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. If you want to say something, then say it. I¡¯m listening.¡± Serenity was making her craft as she spoke. Her attitude ignited something in the Hunt brothers¡¯ hearts. Mike took a few deep breaths and spoke gently,¡° Serenity, we¡¯re a close knitted family and we share a blood as well. Can you not go that far? Yes, we were wrong. We apologize for that. However, our grandparents are also your grandparents. ¡°They¡¯re old and can¡¯t withstand torment. It¡¯s fine if you¡¯re unwilling to pay for Grandmom¡¯s treatment. There are a lot of us, so if each of us chips in a little, it¡¯ll be enough for her medical bills. However, you should at least go to the hospital to visit her. Grandmom was heartbroken at the things you said about us online. I¡¯ve lost count of the amount of time she cried. It¡¯s harmful to her condition. ¡°Serenity, delete that post of yours, and we¡¯ll consider this matter closed. No matter what, we¡¯re still family. You won¡¯t be happy if we suffer too.¡± After Mike was done with his speech, Serenity looked up at him and said in amusement, ¡°Why won¡¯t I be happy? I didn¡¯t make anything up and nder you guys. I just stated the facts. ¡°As for visiting Grandmom in the hospital¡­ I actually thought of visiting her and wondered how much money to give. Of course, I can¡¯t pay for the medical fees. More than ten years ago, they said they don¡¯t need Liberty and I to take care of them while they¡¯re alive. They don¡¯t need us to bury them when they die either. I also have a hard life and don¡¯t make a lot of money. I don¡¯t have much left after deducting all the necessary expenses.¡± Chapter 139 Chapter 139 Chapter 139 ¡°However, after being morally ckmailed by you guys who deliberately distorted the truth and beingbeled as someone who¡®s unfilial, I decided not to visit her anymore. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. I won¡®t give her any money either. All of you have scolded me online, but now you want me to walk up to her just to get another scolding?¡± ¡°Serenity, they¡®re our grandparents. You won¡®t die from a little scolding by them. Although you¡®re not obligated to support them, anyone with a conscience would give them some living expenses. It¡®s been so many years, but your sister and you have never gone back to visit them or give them money for maintenance. Well, if you¡®re still able to sleep at night, then we won¡®t say anything about ¡°We have already deleted our blog post, so you should delete yours too. Do you know what impact your post had on all of us? We can sue you for cyberbullying. However, since we¡®re cousins, we had decided to negotiate with you privately. There¡®s no need to bring this matter into court.¡± The one who spoke was John, the most promising person in that generation of the Hunt family. He spoke with superiority and arrogance with his tone pompous and self ¨C righteous, as if lecturing Serenity. Through what he said, he was still using Serenity and Liberty of not being filial to their grandparents because they did not pay them living expenses or a visit. However, he conveniently ignored the agreement the seniors had signed stating that Serenity and Liberty did not have to support them through life nor attend their funeral. Serenity sneered. ¡°Go ahead and sue me. I¡®ll wait for the court summons. Also, I¡®m cyberbullying you? Weren¡®t you the ones who cyberbullied Liberty and I? What, you¡®re allowed to bully us, but we¡®re not allowed to rify the facts? I didn¡®t hire people to purposefully mislead public scrutiny either. Theizens doxed you guys because they couldn¡®t stand you. ¡°Yeah, we¡®re unfilial and didn¡®t give our grandparents any living expenses . However, may I ask how much do you give to them per month, Mr. Hunt? How many times do you go back to visit them? ¡°Some people really can¡®t be expected to have a conscience. Do you remember how Liberty and I got kicked out of the house back then? And how was our house forcefully seized by others? You were the one who benefited the most. They named you an adopted son of my parents! Ptui! ¡°You¡®ve gotten so used to living off someone else¡®s fortune, and you haven¡®t had enough? John Hunt, let me tell you, I¡®m never deleting that post. Sue me if you dare. I¡®ll even invite the media to broadcast ourwsuit live! ¡°The estate is under my parents¡® name, so I can use thewsuit to make that clear. Don¡®t tell me that you¡®re my parents¡® adopted son. My parents had no son when they died. Your adoption was just an excuse to upy the property left by my parents.¡± John went pale. He had no way to refute. Thinking of how he had been suspended from his job and would most likely lose the position he had struggled years to get, he suppressed his anger, softened his expression , and said gently, ¡°Serenity, I was wrong. Be the bigger person and don¡®t hold it against us. ¡°Grandmom¡®s condition is critical now. No matter what mistakes she had made in the past, she¡®s still our grandmother. Since she¡®s old and ill, just forgive her ande with us to the hospital to visit her.¡± The Hunt family¡®s n was to let Serenity visit her grandmother in the hospital to ease both side¡®s animosity. Furthermore, it would send the message to the public that they had reconciled, so the public would stop throwing eggs at the family. All of them had been affected by this incident, Being scolded by the netizens was a trivial matter, However, it had ended up affecting their work and business as well. The two elderly were still stubborn and refused to bow down. However, when they heard that their children and grandchildren¡®s jobs were affected, they felt sorry for them. That was the only reason they agreed to let their grandchildren find Serenity to negotiate. They knew that Liberty was just a housewife now, and this matter was mainly handled by Serenity, so they went straight to Serenity and did not bother Liberty. ¡°I heard that you¡®re married. If your husband is free, bring him along to the hospital so Grandmom can meet him and test him. Don¡®t end up like your sister.¡± From what she just heard, Serenity realized that her cousins had figured out her and Liberty¡®s situation. They were rather capable. ¡°Save your breath, John. If she doesn¡®t go, just smash up her store!¡± Chapter 140 Chapter 140 Chapter 140 Serenity¡®s youngest cousin was only seventeen or eighteen years old. It was the age whereby impulse and hot¨Cbloodedness reigned supreme. He had a horrible temper too. When Serenity refused to go to the hospital or delete the post, he got angry and threatened to smash her bookstore. Serenity looked at him coldly. ¡°Don¡®t you dare!¡± Her eyes were stern and cold, and her icy words carried a domineering aura that made the Hunt brothers shrink for no reason. ¡°Noah.¡± Mike turned his head to re at the youngest cousin. When thetter did not dare to speak up anymore, he looked at Serenity and smiled. ¡°Serenity, don¡®t be mad at Noah. That¡®s just the way he talks. ¡°Like what John said earlier, we¡®re still cousins with close blood rtions. No matter what, we¡®re family. Will you benefit by humiliating us? We were wrong in this matter, so we apologize to you. Let bygones be bygones, okay? ¡°You don¡®t need to pay any money. We only ask that you go visit Grandmom. She really wants to see you. These days, Grandmom and Granddad have been ming themselves for doing so many heartless things to you before. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. They said that they had let your parents down, ¡°Serenity, we¡®re not saints, so we all make mistakes. The important thing is that we acknowledge our mistakes. Our grandparents are old and know they were at fault. Just give them the chance to correct their mistakes and apologize to you.¡± Only when they pulled out the emotion card and both sides made up would Serenity delete the post and end the matter. Even if they wanted money, they could not ask for it now and could only give up. In fact, they all regretted it. If they had known that Serenity was so tough and fierce enough to air the family¡®s dirtyundry in retaliation, they would have never have used this trick. They ended up being dealt a heavy blow. They were of the opinion that the Hunt sisters cared about their reputation, and that no one would come to the sisters¡® aid. However, they never imagined that so many people would help Serenity and Liberty when the situation was reversed. Instead, they became the ones who were beaten up like dogs. With their family conditions and their ie, each of them only needed to chip in a little to cover for their grandmother¡®s medical expenses. Even if they did not, their grandparents had hundreds of thousands in savings, whidi was enough to pay the medical bills. They simply did not want to spend their own money and wanted to make the Hunt sisters pay instead. In the end¡­ the losses outweighed the gains. Actually, no; they did not gain anything at all except for a face full of dust. They had no choice but to go to Serenity in person, apologize to her, and beg her to let them go. Even if they hated her so much that their teeth ached, they could only find a way to retaliate after this matter was over. On the surface, they had to act as if they were trying to make peace with her. Chapter 141 Chapter 141 Chapter 141 Serenity chuckled and said, ¡°I heard Granddad and Grandmom are doing well in the hospital; eating well, sleeping well, anding down on me pretty hard too. They don¡®t seem to think they¡®re in the wrong. Are you sure they want to apologize to me?¡± Mike wanted to jump to his grandparents¡® defense, but no words came out of his mouth. Grandmom and Granddad did not genuinely ept their faults. Instead, the Hunt family persuaded them to do so. The family wanted to put everything behind them before things got more out of hand for them. With both parties¡® reconciliation, the public interest would soon wane and they would be distracted by the latest trending news. It would not be long before theizens forgot about the Hunts, and the family would have their peace back. If there was one thing the Hunts learned, it was that the inte was a powerful force that worked like a double edged sword. While the inte could be a tool to attack someone, those who abused it would suffer devastating consequences when their actions backfired on them. ¡°Now, if there¡®s nothing, I¡®d like you all to leave. Don¡®t crowd my ce and get in the way of my business.¡® Serenity showed them the door, refusing to engage with them any further. The Hunt boys scowled. Standing in a corner, Jasmine and Shawn gave them a warning look. A whileter, John said, ¡°Serenity , you should learn to forgive and forget. Don¡®t burn your bridges.¡± Turning on his heel, John walked out. John was the brightest among his family members in the same age group. In fact, he was the most aplished out of everybody in his town. Praise and ttery followed him everywhere back in his hometown. With Serenity putting him in the spot, John was not going to stand there and take the humiliation. John resented Serenity and believed she had no regard for family. They were cousins, for goodness¡® sake! The whole family was close when Serenity¡®s parents were still around. However, Serenity and Liberty started shing with the rest of the family after the passing of their parents. Serenity would jump at John¡®s throat if she knew what was on his mind. The Hunts knew better than anyone else the reason Serenity and Liberty drifted apart from them. He sure had the nerve to put the me on the sisters! The Hunt brothers and cousins drove away in their cars. Apart from Noal who was too young to get a driving license, the rest brought their own vehicle. There were a total of seven cars. In the same fashion they came, it was quite a bustle when they left too. The cheapest car among them cost two to three hundred thousand dors. John drove a Mercedes Benz worth over a million bucks. ¡°They¡®re unbelievable , Serenity. Don¡®t be quick to kiss and make up. Let them sit in dread for days and dwell in their undoing before you consider a reconciliation. Otherwise, they¡®ll take you for a pushover and think that a fake apology could cancel out all the bad they¡®ve done to you. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. They will still try to take advantage of you the next time.¡± Having read Serenity¡®s post on Twitter , Shawn¡®s heart went out to Serenity. Shawn hated himself for his being young as he had only entered the workforce and could barely stand on his two feet. He was incapable of being shoulder Serenity could lean Oni yet If he had the influence, status, and finesse possessed by the heir of the Yorks, Shawn would make the Hunts¡® lives a living hell. ¡°I won¡®t patch things up with them so easily. It¡®s not like they genuinely want to make peace anyway. They only came looking for me because theizens put the heat on them. Not to mention, they must live with the repercussions. They¡®d rather die than admit they¡®re wrong if it weren¡®t for the retribution in their lives now.¡± The Hunts did not think they were in the wrong the whole time. They believed Serenity should foot the medical bill now that Old Mrs. Hunt was sick. They expected Serenity to pay for gas and travel expenses as they apanied Old Mrs. Hunt all the way to the city and visited her too. Since Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt upied Serenity¡®s family home, it gave an illusion to the Hunts that Serenity¡®s family should be responsible for the old folks. Serenity¡®s family should be the ones paying for everything. As for whatever happened in the past, the Hunts chose to forget about it. ¡°Honestly, I wouldn¡®t believe such people exist in the world if I hadn¡®t seen and heard it with my own eyes and ears. I¡®m not just talking about one or two. The entire family is bizarre.¡± Jasmine had never seen anything like it. It was mind blowing: Chapter 142 Chapter 142 Chapter 142 Shawn believed the Hunts were unbelievable. Their shamelessness was on a whole new level. ¡°Serenity, I got your conversation with them on tape,¡± Jasmine said. ¡°I¡®ll send the voice recording to you in case they make things up about you again online.¡± Serenity gave her best friend the thumbs up. The Hunts got her so riled up that it slipped her mind to record on her phone. ¡°Shawn, aren¡®t you going to work?¡± After sending the voice recording to her best friend , Jasmine realized her cousin was still at the shop. She urged him to hurry to work. Reluctant to leave , Shawn uttered, ¡°I¡®m working in my family¡®spany. It doesn¡®t make a difference if I¡®m a littlete.¡± ¡°All the more you should put in the effort and abide by thepany¡®s rules and regtions since you¡®re working in your family¡®spany. Set a good example so no one can find fault with you. Hurry along now. You¡®ll get it if Aunt Rachel finds out you¡®re not in the office.¡± As Shawn was the firstborn, Jasmine¡®s aunt and uncle had high expectations of him to eventually take over the family business. Serenity chimed in, ¡°Shawn, you should rush to work. It¡®ll be time to clock out if you don¡®t leave now. Although Shawn grumbled and whined , he grabbed his car keys and walked out while reminding Serenity,¡± Serenity, don¡®t forget to buy me dinner.¡± ¡°Got it. When did I ever break my promise to you?¡± Shawn left the bookshop reluctantly. With Shawn gone, the bookshop resumed its former peace. Jasmine proceeded to read novels while Serenity worked on her crafts. She put away her tools when noon was approaching as school was out for the day. Meanwhile, after business¨Crted discussions ended in the CEO¡®s office at York Corporation, Josh casually brought up, ¡°Mr.York, I got word that the missus¡® rtives made quite an entrance when they turned up at her shop. The lot of them came in a few cars.¡± Zachary¡®s dark eyes glistened, but he kept a straight face. Without lifting his chin, he said saintly, ¡°Serenity is her own woman. It¡®s not like those people can get their way even if they show up since she has a leg to stand on.¡± Seeing that his boss was not the least bit worried, Josh sensibly changed the subject It had only been a short while since their marriage. His boss was detached in nature, so it was likely Serenity needed more time to win his boss¡®s heart. Oh, Serenity! The battle is far from over. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. You need to keep going! ¡®You can do it!¡® Josh cheered Serenity on in his mind, hoping the missus could steal Zachary¡®s heart soon. It would be interesting when it happened. ¡°Lunch together?¡± Zachary put his signature on the paperwork before putting down his pen. He nced at Josh and declined the request, ¡°You put me off lunch.¡± Josh was speechless. ¡°You¡®re nosy like a woman. I prefer silence.¡± Josh was dumbfounded , to say the least. How was Josh supposed to gather intel for Zachary if he did not pry into other people¡®s business? Chapter 143 Chapter 143 Chapter 143 Zachary was a little worried that Serenity could not deal with the Hunt cousins, but he said nothing about it. He did not even give Serenity a call. Now that they had been married for nearly a month, Zachary had a bit more of an idea of Serenity¡¯s personality now than before. Serenity would call him for help if things were more than she could handle. Since there were no calls from her, it meant she could manage. Besides, she would not lose since she had a leg to stand on. With this in mind, Zachary switched to another car after work and drove to Wiltspoon School. ILU When Zachary was leaving the office , Josh comined that Zachary had recently pushed all the business dinners onto him. Zachary replied, ¡°I have a wife. I should go home to spend some time and bond with my wife after work.¡± Josh was speechless. ¡°As it! It¡¯s clearly an excuse! ¡®It¡¯s just his excuse to ck off!¡¯ Josh protested in his mind. Zachary had been neglecting his work since he got married. It was so unlike him. LL It was not like Zachary could hear Josh¡¯sints. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary arrived at Wiltspoon School to see students flooding into Serenity¡¯s bookshop. Some were checking on reference books while others were picking stationery. Considering his imposing mien, Zachary did not enter the shop in case he scared the students away. It would affect Serenity¡¯s business. Serenity mentioned that he should work in education since he was stricter than a school teacher. A whileter, the students returned to the school in droves for their extracurricr activities. Zachary got down from the car and entered the shop. Serenity was clearing the mess at the cash register when she spotted Zacharying in. Surprised , she watched the man strode into the shop while feeling in awe of hismanding presence once again. AL He was like a king gracing peasants with his existence. It was no wonder the students dared not set foot into the shop when he was around. Zachary had that towering air about him that drove people away. Zachary stood before Serenity in no time, smug to see Serenity drooling over him. He was aware of his attractive physique, Without showing any emotions on his face, Zachary cleared his throat. Snapping out of her thoughts, Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t you have to workte tonight? How did you find the time to visit me?¡± Zachary came home from work after midnight every day when they first got married. Lying through his teeth, Zachary replied in a husky voice, ¡°The project I was working on has ended, so no overtime for me.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Serenity then asked, ¡°Have you eaten? Should I order takeout for you?¡± Before Zachary could reply, Jasmine came over and said,¡± Serenity, you should head home with Mr. York. I¡¯ll watch the shop. There¡¯s nothing much going on at night anyway.¡± Since the students barely had time to roam around after extra-curricr activities, not many woulde to the shop unless it was to look for reference materials. ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll head back then.¡± Serenity epted her best friend¡¯s offer to watch over the shop. She got her things ready before taking out a copper wire tree from under the cash register to give to Zachary. She said, ¡°I made this for you. Do you like it? The maneki neko is not ready yet l¡¯ll probably need time until tomorrow morning to give you the finished product.¡± Zachary took the miniature tree and was pleased that he had a bigger pot than Callum¡¯s. With the callous lines along his face softening, he replied gruffly, ¡°Sure.¡± ¡°I¡¯m d you like it. Let¡¯s go.¡± Serenity walked around the cash register and said goodbye to her best friend before leaving the bookshop with her husband. She wanted to ride on her e-bike. Zachary solemnly said, ¡°We¡¯re taking my car.¡± Chapter 144 Chapter 144 Chapter 144 After a pause, Zachary added. ¡°I¡®ll drive you to work tomorrow morning.¡± Since Zachary was being thoughtful , Serenity left her e bike at the shop and took a ride in Zachary¡®s car. Jasmine watched the couple as they left while mumbling to herself, ¡°They¡®re acting more like a couple now.¡± Although Zachary was aloof and antisocial , his care for Serenity was in the details. ¡°I¡®d be happy to marry immediately if a man like Mr. Yorkes into my life.¡± It was a pity that her blind dates had nothing on Zachary. The supposed fine men were only ced above the rest because of their high ie. However, they were far from beingbeled fine men. The man Jasmine went on a blind date with at Beans and Cream had taken a fancy to Serenity. The man even made a private call to the matchmaker to ask about Serenity, only to find out that Serenity was taken. The man must be living in Lland. Jasmine called the man to give him a piece of her mind, threatening to ruin him if he were to look for Serenity in private ande between her marriage. ¡°Oh, Serenity. You must be here to visit your sister.¡± Serenity ran into her sister¡®s neighbor from downstairs, and the neighbor said hello to Serenity. ¡°Mrs. Zaks, have you had dinner? Yeah. I¡®m here to see my sister.¡± Serenity stopped to chat with Mrs. Zaks and stroked the hair of Mrs. Zack¡®s young granddaughter. She took out a few fruits from the bag and gave them to the little girl. She looked at her grandmother to get permission before epting the fruits. ¡°Thank you, Serenity.¡± The little girl politely thanked Serenity. Serenityplimented the little girl¡®s manners and then asked Mrs. Zaks in a hushed tone, ¡°Mrs. Zaks, everybody was looking at me funny when I got out of the car. Is there something wrong with me?¡± ¡°No.You look the same as always.¡± Mrs. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Zaks added with a smile. ¡°You must be imagining it. Oh, I got it. They might look at you that way because of your sister. I guess you didn¡®t know, but your sister had a fight with your brother¨Cinw. Your sister chased your brother ¨C inw down several streets with a kitchen knife. ¡°Everybody thought you were the feisty one in the past. No one knew your sister had it in her.¡± During the three years living in Liberty¡®s home, Serenity once came to her nephew¡®s defense and got into a screaming match with someone. She was only one person while the other party was an entire family. Still, the family lost to her. Since then, she earned herself a title for her sassiness in the neighborhood. ¡°My sister and brother¨Cinw had a fight?¡± Color drained from Serenity¡®s face while Zachary raised a brow. ¡°I don¡®t know what¡®s the reason for the fight. Everybody saw your sister going after your brother¨Cinw with a knife the other day. We only saw your sister return alone. I heard that your brother¨Cinw¡®s family picked him up. Your sister probably didn¡®t let you know because she didn¡®t want you to worry about her.¡° Chapter 145 Chapter 145 Chapter 145 Everybody in the neighborhood knew how close the sisters were. Liberty kept the matter from her sister to save her the worry. ¡°Thank you, Mrs.Zaks.¡± Serenity thanked Mrs.Zaks before continuing her quick walk toward her sister¡®s residential building while dragging Zachary along. ¡°My brother¨Cinw was angry that my sister hadn¡®t cooked lunch for him when I dropped her off the other day. Hank looked like he wanted to hit my sister, but he wiped that look off his face when he saw me,¡± Serenity babbled to Zachary. ¡°Why didn¡®t my sister let me know?¡± Serenity felt bad for her sister. Women gained a second chance in life when they got married. Her sister¡®s second chance in life did not seem smooth sailing. Hank¡®s attitude toward Liberty changed for the worse less than three years into the marriage. Zachary replied firmly, ¡°Your sister doesn¡®t want you to worry. Mrs.Zaks said that your sister chased your brother ¨C inw down a few streets with a knife. It means your sister had the upper hand. Don¡®t worry. It will be fine.¡± It was hard for Serenity to take her mind off it. Nevertheless, she did not dwell on the matter further with Zachary. She pulled Zachary up the stairs and pulled out the key her sister had given her to open the door. Liberty was cooking in the kitchen. Detecting the sound of the door opening, she thought Hank was home. She picked up her pan and came out of the kitchen. She would not hold back if Hank had the nerve toy his hands on her again. Hank had not contacted her since returning to his parents ¡®home. Nevertheless, her inws had bombarded her phone with hate messages and badmouthing her in the Browns¡® family group chat. ? N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Her inws brought together other rtives to use Liberty of her failure as a wife that warranted a beating from her husband. In short, they were saying that she deserved it. Hank was not at fault. She was at fault instead. Some older rtives believed they were of authority to persuade her to apologize to Hank, saying something about not going to bed angry. It was not about some blood feud, so there was no need to yak about it in the family group chat. Of course, the Browns¡® rtives were on Hank¡®s side. They advised her to be understanding of Hank and spend less money. Apparently, Hank had it hard at work, so it was normal that he had a bit of a temper when he returned home. Liberty was supposed to be tolerant of his mood swings. Livid, Liberty quit the Browns¡® family group chat. She would never visit these rtives¡® homes with Hank ever again. ¡°Ant Swer.¡± Sonny was sitting on the living room floor, ying with his building blocks when he saw his aunt entering the house. He rose from the floor with delight and ran toward Serenity. With her sister here, Liberty intuitively hid in the kitchen. Since the bruises on her face had not gone down, Liberty had avoided going out to get groceries in the past two days. It was a good thing she had enough ingredients in the fridge tost a few meals. Serenity picked up her nephew and kissed him on the cheek before persuading him to go along with Zachary while she went to the kitchen. ¡°Liberty.¡± ¡°Aren¡®t you watching the shop tonight, Seren?¡± Liberty asked Serenity with her back facing her sister. ¡°Jas is at the shop tonight. Liberty, what¡®s going on between you and my brother inw?¡± Serenity came directly to the question as she approached her sister. Catching a glimpse of the ck¨Cand¨Cblue on Liberty¡®s face, Serenity immediately turned her sister around. ¡°I¡®m going to make Hank pay!¡± Serenity saw red and turned on her heel to leave. How dare he beat her sister up! Did Hank think her sister had no family to back her up? So long as Serenity was around, she would not let anybody walk all over her sister! Chapter 146 Chapter 146 Chapter 146 Serenity¡®s sister was her rock. Now that Serenity was all grown up and had the means, it was her turn to protect her sister. ¡°Seren.¡± Liberty held onto her sister and said, ¡°Don¡®t go. The injury is only superficial. Plus, I didn¡®t let him get away with it. I chased him down a few streets with a knife and scared him out of his wits. I trust he won¡®t be violent to me anymore.¡± ¡°If he has done it once, he will do it again, Liberty. He won¡®t know fear if you don¡®t fight back when heys his hands on you. He¡¯ll only assault you again.¡± There should be zero tolerance toward domestic violence! ¡°I know. That¡®s why I didn¡®t give in and beat him up too. Teven went after him with a knife. You should¡®ve seen the scared look on his face. His legs were shaking. I heard that you must win the first fight between couples, and I won! He should think twice beforeying his hands on me next time.¡± Liberty pulled her sister back firmly, keeping Serenity from getting even with Hank. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. ¡°He¡®s back at his parents¡® home. You¡®ll be facing his entire family if you go there. It won¡®t go well for you. Don¡®t go. I won¡®t tolerate his behavior anymore. I¡®ll fight back if he screams and raises his hand at me.¡± ¡°Liberty, why didn¡®t you tell me?¡± Heartbroken , Serenity caressed her sister¡®s bruised face and asked in distress, ¡°Does it still hurt, Liberty ? D*mn Hank! How could he be rough with you? You¡®ve been together for so many years and even gave him a son. I can¡®t believe he hit you.¡± Liberty curled her lips bitterly. ¡°He has been disgusted by the way I look since a long time ago. ¡°Did Zacharye over too?¡± ¡°He¡®s here. He¡®s ying with Sonny in the living room,¡± Serenity replied. Liberty spoke in a muted tone to urge her sister, ¡°Seren, you see how my marriage is breaking down. At the end of the day, it¡®s all because I quit my job and trusted your brother ¨Cinw when he said he¡®d take care of me. You need to always be financially independent. No matter what, women should have their own source of ie. ¡°Don¡®t believe the bullsh*t men say about supporting you financially. It¡®ll put you in a passive position. It¡®s fine if he follows through with his marriage vows and loves you forever, but if you get a man like your brother¨Cinw ¡­ Look at what happened to me.. Also, you have to take care of your appearance Take time for yourself and watch your figure. Men are lying when they say they¡®ll love you no matter what you be! They¡®re shallow and their values are only skin¨Cdeep.¡± ¡°I will, Liberty.¡± Serenity owned a bookshop, so it would not impede her from running a household. Zachary never said anything about getting her to quit and supporting her at home. All he did was make her sign a contract to divorce six monthster¡­ As for gaining a thicker waistline after giving birth, Serenity believed that she was far from going down that route. It may not even happen. She did not intend to remarry if she and Zachary were to separate. Serenity was fine with being on her own. Serenity could adopt a child from the orphanage if she wanted to raise a child. ¡°Why did you fight, Liberty?¡± Serenity wanted to know the reason. Liberty turned off the fire and removed the pan from the stove. ¡°I¡®m guessing you and Zachary haven¡®t had dinner. Let¡®s eat together. I¡®ll make extra servings of pasta.¡± She only made enough for herself and Sonny, ¡°I¡®ll do it, Liberty.¡± Serenity was a better cook than her sister She began preparing the pasta and ingredients for the sauce before turning to her sister and asked, ¡°Tell me, Liberty. Why did he strike you?¡± ¡°It¡®s about going halves. Since he insisted on doing it, I demanded the same on everything else too. That was when he manhandled me. I wouldn¡®t have had a go at him if it wasn¡®t for his sudden outburst.¡± Now that Serenity was in the know, Liberty spilled the beans on the reason for the fight. Serenity chewed her brother¨Cinw out. Although Liberty stopped her from getting even with Hank, Serenity decided to look for her brother¨Cinw after dinner. As Liberty¡®s family, Serenity needed to put the message out there. She would go after anyone who came at her sister! Chapter 147 Chapter 147 Chapter 147 As the sisters only had each other for many years, Liberty understood Serenity well enough to know that her sister would stick up for her. In a deliberate effort to get her sister to stick around, Liberty took out a bottle of wine and enjoyed a ss with Serenity until midnight before letting the couple leave. Serenity was a lightweight, and Liberty took out a stiff drink. After a ss of wine, Serenity found herself tipsy. She was feeling dizzy and staggering in her footsteps by the time she left her sister¡¯s ce. Liberty saw the young couple off at the door. She used to attend social engagements with her boss when she was working back then. Having learned to hold her liquor , Liberty could handle a ss of wine just fine. ¡°Zachary, Seren¡¯s drunk. Please take good care of her,¡± Liberty urged her brother-inw. She got her sister drunk, so Serenity would not go after Hank for payback Liberty was afraid the Browns would gang up on Serenity if she went to the Browns¡¯ residence. The Browns were just as absurd as Liberty¡¯s rtives. ¡°I will take good care of Serenity, Liberty.¡± Zachary helped Serenity down the stairs effortlessly. After Serenity nearly fell more than a few times, Zachary had to pick her up and carry her. ¡°Why did you drink when you couldn¡¯t? Your sister had a reason to bring out that bottle of wine. Yet, you were so foolish to drink it.¡± Serenity wrapped her arms around Zachary¡¯s neck while letting out a blech. With the stench of alcohol invading his space , Zachary turned his head away in disdain and said, ¡°Don¡¯t blow your breath at me. You smell of alcohol. This is from N?velDrama.Org. It reeks.¡± LLLL ¡°I want to!¡± Serenity stuck her face against his. ¡°I¡¯ll stink you to death. Why didn¡¯t you stop me when you saw through my sister¡¯s ns?¡± Zachary was notfortable with her being so close to him and nearly hurled her to the ground. ¡°Serenity!¡± Scowling, he cried, ¡°I know you¡¯re still sober. Don¡¯t you dare try to cop a feel!¡± Serenity chuckled before resting her head on his shoulder. ¡°I want to get even with Hank for abusing my sister. I¡¯ll go tomorrow if I can¡¯t go today. I¡¯ll barge into his office to find him! ¡°How could you say that my breath stinks? I didn¡¯t evenin about your breath when you were drunk thest time.¡± Zachary muttered, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask you to look after me when I was drunk, but you need my help to carry you now.¡± Serenity murmured, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask you to carry me.¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. Well, no good deed went unpunished. After descending the stairs, Zachary stuffed his drunken wife into the car. Due to her tendency of groping him, he shoved Serenity in the backseat so her wandering hands would not get in the way of his driving. It did not matter to Serenity as she got into the car,y down, and conked out. Zachary turned over to nce at her. Seeing that she had fallen asleep without qualms, Zachary squinted his eyes and said nothing He quietly drove his wife home. Midway, the woman in the backseat jolted up and yelled,¡± Pigs will fly when men be dependable.¡± She fell back down and continued her beauty sleep after that. Zachary turned his head around to look at her once more. He sat in silence for a while before his husky voice echoed in the car. ¡°Don¡¯t paint all men with the same brush. It takes all kinds to make a world. Some men can¡¯t be trusted, but there are reliable guys too.¡±. Zachary would be a reliable man if he were to fall for her. Even if love did not exist between them, he would do his due diligence as a husband in the next six months. The woman in the backseat did not answer. Zachary did not count on her to give a response. Soon, they were back at Brynfield. Zachary parked the car, got down, and pulled open the door to the backseat. He popped his head in and called out to the girl, ¡°We¡¯re home, Serenity. Get down. Chapter 148 Chapter 148 Chapter 148 With Zachary waking her up, Serenity sat up and rubbed her eyes innocently before staring straight at Zachary without blinking. Suddenly, she extended her arms and said with a sparkle in her beautiful eyes, ¡°Carry me out of the car, Handsome.¡± Wincing bis face, Zachary reached his hand out to knock her head. His tone turned chilly. ¡°I warned you. Don¡¯t act drunk and take advantage of me. You might be intoxicated, but you¡¯re not wasted. You¡¯re aware of your actions.¡± Serenity was indeed aware. However, the alcohol made her rather impulsive. Despite his multiple warnings , Serenity could not keep her hands to herself. No way a big man like him was scared of a youngdy¡¯s harassment. He would be made aughingstock if word were to get out. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± Serenity giggled and asked, ¡°Do you have some sort of problem like the heir of the Yorks?¡± He was more innocent than her in the affairs between men and women. With alcohol getting to her head, Serenity could not help but tease him. ¡°What kind of problem?¡± ¡°You either can¡¯t get it up or you swing the other way.¡± Zachary turned ck in the face. ¡°Nana kept ying matchmaker for you and I. I was thinking that for a man to be single in his thirties, he must be ugly. I realized I was wrong when I met you. You¡¯re not ugly. In fact, you¡¯re hot. ¡°So, I was thinking if there was something wrong with you ..¡± Amid the giggling, Serenity¡¯s hands were busy fondling his chiseled face. ¡°Zachary, are you a wife beater? I should tell you now that I¡¯m trained in the art of self-defense. I¡¯ll beat you up if you put your hands on me. ¡°Oh, my. I¡¯m tempted to kiss your handsome face. How about you give me a smooch? Come on. Pucker up¡­¡± Serenity¡¯s insolent advances and conceit tipped Zachary over the edge. Pressing her down onto the backseat, he towered over her with his muscr body and sped her roaming hands down above her head. Then, he lowered his head and sealed her babbling lips, Well, he would show it to her! Perhaps Serenity was drunk, as this time, she did not fall into a state of shock like before. Instead, she responded with passion through her mouth. Zachary intended to give her a butterfly kiss, but her response awakened the potential lurking within him. He took it all the way and locked his tongue with hers in a deep kiss. After the kiss, Zachary stepped out of the car and grabbed her feet to drag her out. He scooped her out of the car and mmed the door shut before hauling her over his shoulder. Zachary started to walk with Serenity hanging upside-down from his shoulder. While Serenity¡¯s head was spinning from the kiss, she was lifted off the seat before she knew it. The next thing she knew, Zachary had carried her over his shoulder. With the pressure against her gut making her rather ufortable, Serenity put up a struggle. ¡°Zachary! Zachary! Put me down!¡± He was rough! Zachary could at least show a bit of tender loving care. He turned a deaf ear to her screams. ¡°Zachary, I promise I won¡¯t hit on you.Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. I¡¯ll abide by your contract. Now put me down. I feel sick. I¡¯m going to puke. Don¡¯t me me if I vomit all over you!¡± Zachary warned her, ¡°Don¡¯t you throw up on me.¡± ¡°Put me down then. I feel sick.¡± ¡°Are you still drunk?¡± ¡°I am. Oh, no. I¡¯m a little sober. No, half¡­ I¡¯ve sobered up.¡± Following her answer, Zachary curled his lips but quickly pursed them straight. He put her down, so she could walk. He then ditched her and went on ahead. ¡­ Was he mad? Chapter 149 Chapter 149 Chapter 149 On the contrary, Zachary was not the least bit angry. He just did not want Serenity to catch him smiling. It was only when he walked into the residential building that he realized his wife did not keep up with him. Stopping in his tracks, he turned around and asked solemnly, ¡°Are you nning to spend the night standing there?¡± Snapping out of her thoughts, Serenity ran overpliantly. ¡°No hard feelings, Mr.York?¡± Zachary gave her a chilly look. Well, his face tended to give out that vibe, to begin with. Poking her forehead, he remarked, ¡°It better not happen again!¡± Acting like a disciplined child, Serenity raised her hand and promised, ¡°I promise it won¡¯t happen again.¡± Without another word, Zachary turned around and walked on. Serenity quickly followed behind him. Staring at his muscr back, Serenity felt the alcohol wearing off. She muttered to herself, ¡®Nana told me to pounce on him, but I don¡¯t have the confidence to warm the heart of an ice prince.¡¯ However, it was great fun hitting on him. She only had the guts to make a pass at him because she had a ss of wine. The most Serenity would usually do was caress his face. He kept his guard up against her as if she was pulling his pants off rather than touching his face. Once they were home, Zachary made a beeline to the kitchen. Since Serenity had no idea what he was up to, she asked him about it, but he ignored her. Not wanting to poke her nose into his business, Serenity walked to the balcony and sat on the swing. She leaned against the seat and pushed back on her tiptoes for a gentle sway. All she could think about was her sister¡¯s marriage. Serenity and Zachary got married at first sight. They did not know each other prior to signing the papers. After marriage, the pair carried on life with mutual respect. They probably were not close enough to show each other their ws. Undeniably, Serenity had it better than her sister. At least, she would not be upset by Zachary¡¯s attitude toward her as feelings were not involved in their rtionship! Nevertheless, Liberty and Hank got married after years of dating Her sister might say she had given up on her brother inw, but Liberty suill had feelings for Hank. Besides, Sonny was also in the picture. Thinking about the love and affection between her sister and brother-inw in the past, Serenity sighed. Was marriage really the tomb of love? Her sister suffered domestic violence at the hands of her brother-inw in less than three years into the marriage. ¡°Serenity.¡± Zachary¡¯s cries from the house pulled Serenity back to reality from her wandering thoughts. After she answered him, Zachary added. ¡°I made you something for your hangover. Have a drink before you wash up and get to bed. Leave everything else for tomorrow.¡± He knew that Serenity felt sorry for her sister and wanted to stick up for her. Since it waste, and she was not exactly sober, Zachary did not want to get into it with her now. Serenity fell silent, not expecting that he went into the kitchen to make something for her hangover. She got up, left the balcony, and went inside. They could divorce six monthster so long as they did not invest any emotions into the marriage. They would proceed to go their separate ways thereafter. With that in mind, Serenity cautioned herself against flirting with him while she was drunk. They should remain a married couple by name who kept a respectful distance from each other. Zachary put the drink on the dining table.This is from N?velDrama.Org. With Serenity stepping into the house, he said faintly, ¡°I¡¯ll leave the drink here. Clean up once you drink up.¡± He turned around and went to his room. As always, he locked the door behind it to stop her from prying and entering Chapter 150 Chapter 150 Chapter 150 A few minutester, Serenity mumbled to herself, ¡°Do you think I want to go into your room? If one day you were to beg me, I wouldn¡¯t set foot inside at all.¡± Having realized that she also had the habit of locking her bedroom door, Serenity stopped rambling. Ultimately, this was the aftereffect of marrying at first sight. After guzzling down the hangover cure Zachary made for her, Serenity returned to her room and turned in for the night. It was a quiet night throughout. The following day, Serenity woke up to the sun shining on her face. She felt around the nightstand for her phone and looked at the time. It was past seven o¡¯clock. Even as an early riser, Serenity barely got up at this hour today. She was usually awake by six in the morning. This was the result of having one ss of winest night. It was a good thing she did not wake up with a headache. She was hungry though. Serenity felt bad for her sisterst night and that resulted in her not much eating at her sister¡¯s ce. Now, the hunger was settling in. She got dressed, brushed her teeth, and left her room in record time. She was about to make her way into the kitchen to get a start on breakfast when she noticed a breakfast spread on the dining table. It was her favorite full breakfast,plete with bacon, sausages, hashbrown, pancake, and coffee. Zachary came out of the kitchen with the perfect sunny side-up eggs in hand. Seeing that Serenity was up, he said faintly, ¡°I didn¡¯t see you when I got up, so I went out to get breakfast. I cooked some eggs.¡± ¡°I thought you made everything yourself.¡± She was also about to say that he had the makings of a great chef. It turned out that he got takeout. Since Serenity was hungry, she sat down and helped herself to a sausage. ¡°The sausage tastes good. I don¡¯t think you got the food from the restaurants around here.¡± Although many restaurants had full breakfast on their menu, the taste was always not quite there. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. The hotel restaurants tended to be more savory. ¡°I drove to the Wiltspoon Hotel to get breakfast. The Wiltspoon Hotel has a good variety, and they make their food from scratch. Their food tastes out of this world. I was thinking I might as well get the best food I could find.¡± Truth be told, Zachary told his bodyguards to get takeout from the hotel. ¡°I share the same thought. I prefer to treat myself to the best food around.¡± Serenity had a taste of Zachary¡¯s eggs and realized it was not bad at all. She remarked with a smile, ¡°Mr.York, I can¡¯t believe you also have the potential to be a chef.¡± Zachary was without a word. Once the couple was nearly stuffed, Zachary suddenly said, ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s better that you don¡¯t look for your brother-inw to get even today.¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°You should ask your sister whether she wants to continue with her marriage. If they still want their marriage to work, you, as the sister-inw, shouldn¡¯t try to teach your brother-in- law a lesson. Of course, you can¡¯t pretend like nothing ever happened but it never hurts to ask about it. ¡°Although you have a great rtionship with your sister, your sister and brother-inw are in this for the long run. They wouldn¡¯t be able to move on if you kick up a huge fuss. What if they were to kiss and make up? You¡¯d be the bad person, and your sister might me you for telling your brother-inw off.¡± Zachary had not married anyone prior to Serenity, so he had no experience on how to make a marriage work. Nevertheless, he had heard about a family standing up for a woman in their family after thetter¡¯s fight with her spouse. In the end, the couple could not live with each other. The woman even med her family for her failed marriage. It was because the woman had never considered divorce. Serenity¡¯s fork halted at picking her mushroom. It might not be what she wanted to hear, but Zachary had a point. Her sister raised the subject of divorce to Serenity, but only in private. There was no telling whether Liberty had made up her mind about it. With a temper such as hers, Serenity might beat Hank up when she sought him out. Would her sister feel sorry for Hank if Serenity hurt him? Chapter 151 Chapter 151 Chapter 151 ¡°I¡¯m not saying that you can¡¯t stand up for your sister, but there¡¯s no turning back once your sister and your brother-inw have a falling out. I definitely am on your side with you sorting it out with your brother-inw.¡± Serenity grimly ate her mushroom and replied, ¡°You have a point. I will control my temper and refrain from hitting anyone, but I¡¯ll still leave him a warning. I don¡¯t want the Browns to think they can pick on my sister just because she doesn¡¯t have a family.¡± Seeing that she took his advice, Zachary left the conversation at that. After filling their bellies, they sat for a little while before heading out together. Knowing that Serenity was worried about her sister, Zachary took a detour to Liberty¡¯s ce so Serenity could check on her sister before dropping her off at the shop. Serenity was touched by his thoughtfulness, She had cautioned herself against hitting on Zacharyst night, but his kindness led her to throw that decision out the window Jasinine said that Zachary was a nice guy and that Serenity should give the rtionship a lighting chance while they were still married. Since only a month had passed out of the agreed six months, she had five more months left to develop feelings for each other and be a real couple. She should give the rtionship a try so as not to regret it in the future. As mentioned by Elisa, she should chase after love. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Even if it was not meant to be, at least she gave it a shot. Elisa would have no regrets even if she failed to capture Mr. York¡¯s heart. Spotting the miniature tree she had given to Zachary, Serenity uttered casually, ¡°You still have the miniature tree in the car.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll put it on my desk when I get to the officeter.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°Please rmend my work to other people if anyone asks.¡± LLLLLL ¡°Sure.¡± Zachary happily agreed to her request. He would get Josh to order the crafts from her online business. Josh would probably wonder why he was dragged into it again. Serenity intended to get to the Browns¡¯ residence and have a talk with her brother-inwter. To her surprise, the Browns came to her first. She got a call from Jasmine while on her way to work. Jasmine said that Hank¡¯s mother and sister were waiting for her at the shop. It was better that they came looking for Serenity as it would save her the trip to the Browns¡¯ residence. Zachary asked, ¡°Do you need my help?¡± ¡°I¡¯m good. Only Hank¡¯s mother and sister came to the shop. Women don¡¯t usually fight. We¡¯d probably bicker at most. You don¡¯t need a row with these women. It¡¯s beneath you. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t lose whether it¡¯s an argument or a fight.¡± As an orphan with the most ridiculous rtives, Serenity had grown up to be feisty. As she mentioned , she would always win in fights and quarrels. A cultured person like Zachary would not pick a fight, whether verbally or physically , unless provoked. Since Serenity did not need help, Zachary dropped her off at the shop and made his way to work. While on the road, Zachary was a little bummed out as he was wearing the suit Serenity bought him. She did not pick up on that when they had breakfast together or when he drove her to the shop. With such a handsome husband by her side, why did she not put her attention on him? It was nine o¡¯clock by the time Zachary made it to the office. Lucky for him, Elisa was not there to block his way into the building. He did not bring his miniature tree out of his car because there were not many people around. Zachary took the elevator straight to the top. He ran into Josh when he was stepping out of the elevator. Josh had a file of papers tucked under his elbow while holding a phone with his right hand to make a call. Having spotted Zachary, Josh gave up on calling and said, ¡°I have an urgent document I need you to sign. I thought you weren¡¯ting to the office since you weren¡¯t around.¡± He exined faintly, ¡°I arrivedte as I had to drive my wife to work.¡± Chapter 152 Chapter 152 Chapter 152 ¡°Mr.York, can you stop unting your rtionship? I have no ns on getting married now.¡± Now that Zachary bade his single life goodbye, he should not drag Josh into a married life. For Zachary to persistently show off the perks of having a wife, he was trying to persuade Josh to ditch his wonderful singlehood too. ¡°Huh? Why did you pick this outfit today?¡± Josh¡®s keen eyes picked up on Zachary not wearing his usual suitbel. He asked out of curiosity, ¡°Why the change of brands?¡± Zachary was a stubborn man. He would stick to the same brand for years once he had a penchant for a certain brand. He was not one to switch betweenbels. With Zachary¡®s taste, the price of the suits he wore were exorbitant. However, the one he had on today did not cost more than a few hundred bucks. This was so unlike Zachary. Following Zachary¡®s footsteps, Josh asked with concern,¡± Mr.York, is ourpany facing a financial crisis? Are you wearing clothes from the outlet store to save cash?¡± To a rich guy like Josh, a suit worth a few hundred bucks was an outlet sale. Zachary waited until he was in the CEO¡®s office before addressing Josh¡®s questioning. ¡°As the administrative executive, you should know whether thepany is experiencing a financial crisis. My wife gave me these new clothes. What? Don¡®t they look good? I think the clothes are great. The fabric is soft on my skin, and the cut fits me well.¡± Josh was speechless. He should not have asked. All Josh got in return was Zachary parading his rtionship in his face. Since the missus gave his boss new clothes, his boss would, of course, dly ept the gift and put the suit on. Josh believed that his boss¨Ccum¨Cbest¨Cfriend was starting to have feelings for his wife. Otherwise , Zachary would never be caught dead in these clothes. Judging by the look on his boss¡®s face, it seemed that the man himself had not realized his feelings for his wife. Now, this was something Josh would not miss for the world Serenity had no idea what was happening on Zachary¡®s end. She walked into the bookshop to find her sister¡®s mother inw and sister inw sitting and waiting for her by the cash register Jasmine poured them each a ss of warm water and ced the drinks in front of them. However, they did not take the drink. With Serenity entering the shop, the mother and daughter scowled grimacingly. Bottling up her anger, Serenity greeted them courteously. ¡°Chelsea, Mrs.Brown, what brings you here?¡± They came looking for her before she had gone to see them. ¡°I hope you¡®re not busy now, Serenity.¡± The students were already in ss when the mother and daughter arrived at the shop. Seeing that it was not busy here, they believed Serenity¡®s business was not doing well. They made the right decision to incite Hank to kick Serenity out of the house. It was unlikely Serenity could earn anything as her business was slow. Besides, the rent in this area was high. She probably did not make enough to cover her rent. It was no wonder Serenity had to make craftworks day and night to sell online. Serenity would still be living on Hank¡®s dime if he did not kick her out. Liberty¡®svish spending probably included funding her sister, The implementation of going halves was a good idea. It greatly secured Hank¡®s interest, Such were the thoughts of Mrs. Brown and her daughter. ¡°Yes, I¡®m not busy. This is from N?velDrama.Org. What¡®s the matter, Mrs. Brown?¡± Serenity had been nothing but polite. Zachary had a point. It would put her sister on the spot if she had a fallout with the Browns when her sister wanted her marriage to work with Hank. Chelsea said angrily, ¡°Of course, something is the matter. That¡®s why we¡®re here. Your sister hit Hank. What do you have to say about it?¡° Chapter 153 Chapter 153 Chapter 153 Serenity nearly burst into an outrage when Chelsea said that in her face. Still, Serenity had ss and did not m the table in front of Chelsea. She unhurriedly went behind the cash register and sat down before looking Chelsea in the eye and bombarding her with questions, ¡°Chelsea , you mentioned my sister hit my brother¨Cinw? Did you witness it? Did my sister start it? Did my brother¨Cinw fight back? How bad was he beaten? Was he hospitalized?¡± Chelsea replied shamelessly, ¡°So what if Hank started it? Your sister ought to be taught a lesson, and Hank wanted to discipline her the other day. However, he didn¡®t want to make your sister look bad since you came over with your husband. We even talked him out of punishing your sister. ¡°Any man would¡®ve pped their wives for all the things your sister had done. Your sister deserved a beating for her mistakes. She had the audacity to hit Hank back until he was ck and blue. He couldn¡®t bring himself to go home. ¡°Serenity, you might be younger than your sister, but you¡®re married and can stand on your own. Since you¡®re Liberty¡®s family, we must discuss the matter with you. You should get your sister toe to our ce and apologize to Hank, bearing gifts. She should also have it in writing that she¡®ll never raise a hand against Hank before taking him home.¡± Chelsea¡®s statement was something else. It was a real eye ¨Copener for Serenity and Jasmine. Serenity learned that Chelsea was ridiculous when her sister confided in her. Chelsea¡®s absurdity right now seemed to take the cake. She was about to blow up. The mother and daughter did not give Serenity a chance to speak as Mrs. Brown took over right after Chelsea was done talking. ¡°Serenity, Chelsea is fair to say that. Show me a family whose wife doesn¡®t go to work or cook. ¡°Hank has to work, and his schedule can be busy too. After going full steam on work in the morning, hees home to no lunch on the table. He was expected to make his own lunch too. It¡®s like he¡®s single and has no wife. ¡°Hank pays for the mortgage and household expenses while your sister sits around the house and does nothing except caring for the child. Sonny is an easy kid. Your sister fools around all day at home, yet she doesn¡®t know how lucky she is. She even fought with Hank. ¡°It¡®s hard enough that Hank is under a lot of pressure. It¡®s fine if she can¡®t help with taking the burden off him, but she refuses to cook and leaves Hank hungry. Of course, Hank¡®s going to be angry. Anybody will be, if they were in his ce. Going halves was thest resort. Your sister squanders money. This is from N?velDrama.Org. She fiddled away over a thousand bucks in one day. Does she think Hank¡®s money grows on trees? ¡°For a family of three , fifty bucks for groceries is good enough, your sister would only need a thousand and five hundred dors a month. Still, Hank gives her three thousand bucks every month. She has the cheek to fuss over going halves. ¡°She has the means to earn her own money. Don¡®t mooch off Hank. Your sister might not care for Hank, but we, parents, do. What¡®s the point of your sister¡®s education? She can¡®t help with the financial burden either. Look at Chelsea. She has three kids, but she works to help with the family. ¡°Your sister refuses to go to work because she wants to take care of the child. She insists Hank pay for her upkeep. Is she Hank¡®s daughter? Why should Hank be her bread and butter? Fine, so Hank pays for her living expenses, but she can¡®t even attend to Hank¡®s needs or cook for him. Does that look like a wife to you? ¡°We have been nothing but kind and patient with your sister. Do you think anybody else would be tolerant toward your sister? They would¡®ve divorced her and kicked your sister out.¡± Mrs.Brown¡¯s words siung harder than Chelsea¡®s. Jasmine picked up a broom, pretending to sweep around the ce. In fact, she was waiting to get a cue from her best friend to sweep the absurd mother and daughter out of here. They were all women here. They should be supporting one another instead of giving each other a hard time. Boiling with rage, Serenity scowled and blurted coldly,¡± Mrs.Brown, do you think it¡®s easy caring for a child since you have experience caring for Chelsea¡®s kids? Do you think you can work with a two¨Cyear¨Cold in tow? ¡°Chelsea has three children, but you and Mr.Brown are hands¨Con with the kids. All she did was pop the babies out. My sister gave you a grandson that bore yourst name, but you wouldn¡®t help out as grandparents. It¡®s funny that youpare Chelsea with my sister. ¡°My sister can go to work and earn an ie if you can help look after Sonny. My sister had a higher ie than my brother¨Cinw before they got married.¡± Chapter 154 Chapter 154 Chapter 154 Chelsea cut in while Serenity was still talking. ¡°We should be responsible for the children we give birth to. The parents¨Cinw have no obligation to look after the grandkids.¡± TIL 1 ¡°That¡®s right. Children should be their parents¡® responsibility. Why don¡®t you care for your own children then, Chelsea?¡± Chelsea opened her mouth and retorted, ¡°My parents are happy to take care of my children. You could tell your sister to ask your parents to care for hers too.¡± Serenity picked up the ss of water in front of Chelsea and sshed it on her face. ¡°Ah! What the hell was that, Serenity!¡± ¡°I was helping you to rinse your filthy mouth.¡± Serenity shot an indifferent re at the mother and daughter Livid , Chelsea wanted to put violence into action when Mrs.Brown held her back. Mrs.Brown said to her daughter, ¡°Your sister¨Cinw¡®s parents are gone for over a decade. You can¡®t me Serenity for being angry since you made a hurtfulment.¡± ¡°But she shouldn¡®t have sshed me with water. My clothes are wet now. Serenity, do you know how much my clothes cost? Can you afford to pay me back?¡± Putting all her energy into sweeping, Jasmine seized the opportunity to get a word in. ¡°Your clothes would be worth a thousand bucks if they¡®re the real deal. It¡®s a pity that yours are a knockoff, so they aren¡®t worth much. You have been scammed if you spent a thousand plus on them. I would say the price is no more than two hundred dors.¡± Chelsea grimaced as she pointed her finger at Jasmine and yelled, ¡°What do you know? You¡®re the one with the knockoff. Mine is an original. I spent over a thousand bucks. Can you afford the brand? You must be jealous of me because you can¡®t afford them and called mine a knockoff.¡± Jasmine clicked her tongue. ¡°The price tag on my clothes is several thousand dors. A designerbel costs tens of thousands . Your clothes are something I use as a rag at home.¡± ¡°You¡­¡± Chelsea turned ck in the face. She had something to hide as she only spent a few hundred on the outfit. She had checked the original brand on its official website. With an authentic piece of clothing priced at over a thousand bucks, Chelsea could not be sure she was wearing the real thing. ¡°Serenity,¡± Chelsea cried. ¡°You sure hire all sorts of people. You should fire her.¡± Serenity retorted callously, ¡°I¡®m sorry. She¡®s not my employee but my partner. Are you sure the clothes on you aren¡®t a knockoff? Why do I get the feeling that you¡®re hiding your shame with anger?¡± Who else but Chelsea would y up her knockoff as the real thing? It was hrious that Chelsea imed she could not afford the clothes. ¡°Chelsea, let¡®s not talk about the clothes. Here¡®s what I think about my sister and brother¨Cinw¡®s situation. As part of my sister¡®s family, I stand by my sister¡®s decision to go halves on everything since Hank wants to go Dutch. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. He proposed the idea, so he should bear the consequences. Why should he get all the good and only pay his share while my sister does and covers for everything else?¡± Chapter 155 Chapter 155 Chapter 155 ¡°Of course, I have no problem if you want to be a ve to your husband, Chelsea. However, my sister is not one. Men and women are both equals in this day and age. There should be equality between spouses. No one is better than the other. ¡°It¡®s your choice to be under your husband¡®s thumb, but don¡®t force your values on my sister. ¡°Hank struck my sister first and bashed her real bad. My sister only retaliated to stay alive. She was acting out of self¨Cdefense. There¡®s no way my sister will apologize with gifts! You should be talking sense into Hank to apologize to my sister.¡± Serenity reflected indifference and assertiveness on her face without fear of offending Liberty¡®s inws. She added. ¡°You can send my sister back here if you think my sister spends money like water rather than earning it. Don¡®t ever use force on her. You might care about your son and brother, but I cherish my sister too. ¡°And one more thing My sister spent over a thousand bucks oli dothes the other day because I was bringing my husband to maret the family My sister wanted to get her family new clothes to presentable I was not all spent ofiterorli You can¡®t hold an isted indenit ay alise her ¡°It has been a while she my sister has anything new to wear after marrying into your family. Yet, you refuse to let the matter go. Sure, your family has been kind, but if that¡®s considered kind, the rest of us must be Mother Theresa then.¡± Serenity¡®s words got under the mother and daughter¡®s skin. Of course, they were livid beyond measure. They stood firm that they were right while Liberty was in the wrong ¡°God forbid my sister didn¡®t cook for one day. You were all over her, saying that it was like Hank didn¡®t have a wife. Well, if you think about it on the flip side, it¡®s like my sister doesn¡®t have a husband either. What¡®s the point of marriage when the husband can¡®t support his wife? He should marry his own family instead. ¡°Besides, it¡®s not like my sister doesn¡®t do anything. Mrs.Brown, you work your *ss off at your daughter¡®s ce. Do you think managing a home is easy?¡± Mrs.Brown opened her mouth. Yet, no words escaped her lips. She and her husband handled the chores, looked after the young ones, and tutored the kids with their homework at their daughter¡®s ce. Truth be told, it was no walk in the park. It was rather annoying, especially when the kids were so little. The children did not know any better and were naughty to mess up the house, Mrs. Brown could be tidying up at one corner while the kids scattered toys in another. The young children often cried and rolled on the ground fussing at every little thing that did not go their way. Caring for toddlers was the most challenging job ever. To be frank, Mrs.Brown would rather get a cleaning job than look after the children and run a house if she did not feel for her daughter. ¡°Mrs.Brown, don¡®t y dumb. You can¡®t expect my sister to give her everything unconditionally when you know it¡®s tough work. What makes you think my sister has it easy? Marriage requires effort from both the husband and the wife. It¡®s all about give and take. It doesn¡®t make sense for my sister to do all the giving while Hank just takes it. ¡°As I said, you can send my sister back to me if you don¡®t feel she¡®s good enough for you. I can support her, but you can¡®t raise your hand at my sister. I¡®m willing to move past the matter since my sister fought back this time, but I won¡®t be so nice next time. That reminds me. You should know that I practice self¨Cdefense, so I know to hit where it hurts the most. You can forget what I just said if you think Hank can handle the consequences.¡± Serenity would not stop until Hank ended up in the hospital if she was fighting Hank! Hank should think twice before striking her sister again! ¡°Do you think anyone would want your sister after she leaves Hank? She¡®s lazy, fat, and a glutton. Hank can¡®t stand the sight of her. Ha! A divorce? Not even a senior citizen would want her once she bes a divorcee.¡± ¡°Chelsea!¡± Mrs. Brown cried before giving her daughter a p on the face. With Serenity giving her a death stare, Chelsea cowered and stopped yakking. However, nothing could stop Chelsea from rambling in her mind. ¡°Serenity, Chelsea was simply saying stuff without thinking. Of course, we don¡®t want to go down the divorce route because it¡®s better to reconcile the couple. It¡®s hurtful to talk about divorce and whatnot. Sonny is still young. He can¡®t grow up in a broken family. ¡°Yes, you¡®re right. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Hank was wrong in this too. He shouldn¡®t have hit your sister no matter how angry he was. Couples shouldn¡®t go to bed angry. Tell your sister toe to our ce and bring your brother¨Cinw home. They should work things out instead of arguing all the time.¡± Chapter 156 Chapter 156 Chapter 156 ¡°I think, like us, you hope Liberty and Hank¡¯s rtionship will turn out fine. You know how couples are. They might have a tiny spat every now and then, but it will pass. Don¡¯t fuss about it too much.¡± Serenity uttered coldly, ¡°Did Hank break his legs or forget his way home? Why does my sister need to bring him home?¡± The Browns mighte down hard on her sister if Liberty went to their residence to bring Hank home. Besides, it would show that Liberty was admitting her fault. Serenity would never allow her sister to admit anything she had not done wrong. Hank was free to return home as he pleased. He could stay at his parents¡¯ ce for all she cared. Her sister could enjoy some peace and quiet in the house. ¡°Why are you being difficult?¡± Mrs.Brown told Serenity off. ¡°Hank¡¯s not giving a dime to your sister for the living expenses so long as he¡¯s not living at his own home. Your sister can forget ever stepping in our house if she can support hersell.¡± With that, Mrs.Brown pulled her daughter along to leave. ¡°I¡¯ll see how long you and your sister can hold out!¡± Mrs.Brown yelled from the entrance. With a nk face, Serenity had to hold herself back from smashing stuff. Her sister married Mr. Wrong and got the worst inws in the world. It was said that before entering a marriage, women should get to know their men¡¯s character as well as finding out whether their families were decent human beings. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re too nice. I would¡¯ve hit them with a broom if it were me. That was infuriating. I¡¯ve never seen shamelessness at this level. They could give your rtives a run for their money.¡± Jasmine barely had it together while listening to the conversation. ¡°I can¡¯t strike them since they didn¡¯t get violent, but I won¡¯t lose to a squabble. You¡¯re only wasting your emotions on these people if you get angry. Jasmine, you¡¯re single. You better open your eyes and have a thorough look at your future man and his family before getting married. You¡¯ll regret it if you marry the wrong man.¡± 1 Her sister gave her all to an undeserving guy. Now, Serenity could only hope that her sister would quickly make the decision to divorce Hank. Serenity¡¯s heart went out to her sister and her predicament. Serenity knew Liberty was sitting on a divorce and fallout because her sister had no confidence things would work out in her favor. It would be a bitter custody fight for Sonny if she were to separate from her husband now. ¡°I won¡¯t ever marry into that kind of family. It¡¯s beyond absurd. All they talked about was subservience . Are they looking for a daughter-inw or a ve? They¡¯re treating your sister as a free nanny.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. The type that can¡¯t fight back when being bashed and beaten. ¡°Tch!¡± Jasmine said furiously, ¡°Liberty should look for a job now. Something more flexible. She can opt for a divorce once she has a job, an ie, and the means for a steady life. What¡¯s the point of keeping a man like your brother inw?¡± Hank was petty, stingy, abusive, and hung up about a subservient wife, Men like this should be dumped right away. Chapter 157 Chapter 157 Chapter 157 ¡°I¡¯ll have a talk with my sister. This can¡¯t go on. She¡¯ll only be treated like dirt.¡± Liberty would always be at a disadvantage without a source of ie. ¡°How about we ask your sister to work at our shop? I¡¯ll pay your sister¡¯s wages. You don¡¯t have to fork out the money. Liberty would be able to take care of Sonny too. That¡¯s an added bonus.¡± Jasmine had Liberty¡¯s interest at heart. Serenity sighed. ¡°My sister won¡¯te. She believes our business is not doing well because I run an online business for additional ie.¡± As a matter of fact, the shop was making a bit of profit. However, Liberty refused to make money out of Serenity, and no amount of words could persuade Liberty otherwise ¡°Liberty used to work in finance. I¡¯ll ask Shawn if Lowe Enterprise is hiring at the moment It¡¯d be great to get Liberty into my unde¡¯s company. Although thepany {an¡¯t Fonpare to York Corporation and Stone Group, it¡¯s a bag bustard Iturripluyero¡¯priks dial welfare aren¡¯t too tby ¡°Shawn could also look out for Liberty. Liberty had worked in her field for many years, so she¡¯s pretty experienced.¡± Serenity gave it a thought before inquiring, ¡°Do you think it¡¯ll be okay? It¡¯s been three years since herst job. She¡¯s been out of touch with society for thest few years, so she¡¯s starting over with her career. Shawn is still learning the ropes in his family¡¯s business. He¡¯s probably not in the position to give my sister a job.¡± ¡°Are you buying Shawn lunch this weekend? You can ask him if he can help out. I¡¯ll ask my uncle if he can¡¯t authorize the hiring.¡± Jasmine¡¯s uncle was the boss of Lowe Enterprise. ¡°Alright then. I¡¯ll ask Shawn for my sister. Thank you, Jasmine.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t thank me. What are friends for? Your sister is my sister. I feel bad for the hardship Liberty¡¯s facing now. I want to help her to be independent. Women should be self -reliant instead of relying too much on men.¡± Jasmine learned a lot from Liberty¡¯s marriage. Although Jasmine got money in the bank and would certainly marry into her own social ss, she was not going to live at the mercy of her man. ¡°Don¡¯t stress yourself about it. Liberty¡¯s all but useless. Her career¡¯s only put on hold by a child and marriage. She¡¯ll find sess and newfound confidence once she¡¯s out of this fix. ¡°But you should urge Liberty to go on a diet. She should look after herself. She can¡¯t count on people to be nice when she doesn¡¯t treat herself right.¡± Jasmine always put herself first.Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Even Serenity would spare no expenses to get the best skincare for the upkeep of her appearance. ¡°I¡¯ll have a good talk with my sister tonight.¡± Serenity believed her sister should cut down the pounds too. Liberty stood at five feet three, and weighed ny pounds before marriage. She was now at two hundred pounds. Her sister should shed pounds not just for her outward beauty, but also for her own health. Liberty ate a lot for breakfast, lunch, and dinner, plus snacks in between. Her waistline had grown due to theck of exercise too. Serenity found pleasure in eating too, but she stayed active to watch her figure. ¡°Maybe I should talk to my sister now.¡± Pulling out her phone, Serenity was about to call her sister when her plione rang. It was Zachary. ¡°Mr.York.¡± Chapter 158 Chapter 158 Chapter 158 Out of habit, Zachary took a moment of silence before asking, ¡°Has the Brown family left? Did they do anything excessive?¡± ¡°They didn¡®t do anything overboard , but they did say a lot of nasty stuff. I was so angry I nearly beat them up. They¡®re just as ridiculous as my rtives. All they did was me my sister and say it was my sister¡®s fault. They want my sister to go to their ce and apologize to Hank with gifts. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. As if that¡®s going to happen!¡± The mention of the Browns saw a rise in Serenity¡®s blood pressure. Before she knew it, Serenity clicked her tongue on the phone and quickly realized how embarrassingly she behaved. She said, ¡°I got too angry, Mr.York. I hope you didn¡®t mind mynguage.¡± Zachary replied tenderly, ¡°Did you have a stern word with them? You should chase them out with a broom. They had the audacity to tell your sister to apologize when she was a victim of abuse.¡± ¡°I roasted them to kingdome, and they fled the scene. Jasmine took out the broom, but I thought I should keep it together since we¡®re civilized human beings. I didn¡®t chase them out with the broom.¡± Zachary was tempted tough. Serenity was not a tolerant person, but she put up with it for the sake of her sister¡®s future and before her sister made a decision. It was hard on Serenity. ¡°Where is your brother¨Cinw working?¡± Zachary intended to ring up the boss of thatpany to give Hank some extra attention. That was, of course, only if he knew the boss of the company. ¡°Waltham Electronics. It¡®s arge¨Cscalepany of over three thousand employees that manufactures mainly electronic parts. My sister and Hank joined thepany straight out of college. My sister was in the finance department and worked her way up to be the finance director before getting hitched. ¡°She¡®s so gullible to trust Hank. She quit her job after marriage and stayed at home to ready herself for pregnancy. Her pregnancy and time with the baby took three years away from her career while Hank climbed the ladder to be a manager with his own secretary.¡± ¡°Mr. York, do you know anyone from Waltham Electronics?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°¡­I don¡®t know anyone, but I¡®ve heard about thispany.¡± York Corporation had a subsidiarypany that produced electronic parts too. It shared the same field as Waltham Electronics, so that would make them rivals. Zachary did not run the subsidiarypany, but its managing director would have the information on Waltham Electronics on his desk should he ask for it. ¡°Let me know if you need my help.¡± Zachary adjusted his tie. It was the tie Serenity gave him. Although it was her thank¨Cyou gift for his help, Serenity bought the tie with her money. Zachary would put on clothes that she gave him. He nned to carry the miniature nt into the office after lunch so that everybody could see it. They would get online to buy Serenity¡®s crafts without him spreading the word. Callum had rmended the handicraft to everybody before, so he trusted they would increase traffic to Serenity¡®s online business. Zachary¡®s silent publicity effort would have a way better effect than Callum¡®s. ¡°I will handle what I can. I¡®m good without your help for now. Oh, I want to ask you a favor if you can help though. Is your finance department hiring at the moment? My sister wants to pick her career back up. It¡®ll give her the confidence to go about the future.¡± After a brief silence, Zachary responded apologetically,¡± I¡®m sorry, Serenity. I can¡®t help you with this. Our finance department is at full capacity now.¡± Even if York Corporation was hiring, Zachary was not going to ce his sister-inw in thepany. He would blow his cover. ¡°It¡®s okay. I was only asking. My sister has the experience, so I believe she can find a job and regain her confidence when she decides to return to the workce.¡± Serenity believed in her sister¡®s capabilities. Chapter 159 Chapter 159 Chapter 159 Zachary said all the right words to console Serenity even if he did not believe them himself. Although he was in a high position , Zachary knew that the requirement had grown stricter when it came to talent acquisition. Liberty had been out of touch with society for three years, and even if she had experience, her skills would be rusty. It probably would not be easy for Liberty to find a job. ¡°Are you at work? Carry on with your work. I¡¯ll hang up.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Zachary waited for Serenity to disconnect the call. After the conversation with her husband , Serenity gave her sister a call to n for her future. Serenity only ended the call when it was time for Liberty to start cooking. With her phone almost out of battery, Serenity pulled out a charger for her phone. As afternoon drew close, Zachary phoned the Wiltspoon Hotel¡¯s manager to prepare two sets of lunch. He also ordered a few extra apanying dishes to be delivered to Bookit, a bookshop near Wiltspoon High School, The lunch was for Serenity. Considering that Jasmine was in the shop, and the girls were best friends, Zachary ordered for Jasmine too. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. It was also a good way to get into Ms.Sox¡¯s good grace, so she could speak well of him in front of Serenity. Despite being taken aback by Zachary¡¯s instruction, the manager dared not question it and did as he was told. Serenity had just finished dealing with the afternoon madness when she received a special lunch delivery from her man. The manager of Wiltspoon Hotel drove himself and hand delivered the lunch to the shop. When he arrived, there were students browsing for learning materials while Serenity was holding her phone to order food delivery. Serenity and Jasmine watched in a daze as the manager entered the shop with a basket in hand. ¡°May I ask? Are you Ms. Serenity ?¡± The manager asked politely. His gaze fell on Serenity. For some reason , his gut was telling him that the girl was Ms.Serenity. ¡°Yes, I am. And you are?¡± Serenity replied and asked the man to identify himself in return as she had never seen him before. As he ced the basket on the cash register, the manager quickly tidied up the surrounding area before retrieving the packed dishes from the basket to disy. Thest toe out were two tters of sliced fruits. They wereplimentary desserts from the hotel. The manager had no idea who Ms. Serenity was, but all he needed to know was that she was someone Mr.York cared about. Otherwise, Mr.York would not put in the personal call to him. Theplimentary fruit tters were the most expensive and best fruits the hotel had. Serenity and Jasmine looked at the man all confused. Why was there a food delivery when they had not ordered any takeout? The food looked pretty sumptuous though, and it came with dessert. Most importantly , they could not tell where the delivery came from since the delivery person did not wear a uniform bearing any logos. ¡°Ms. Serenity, I¡¯m the manager of Wiltspoon Hotel. I received a call from Mr.York not too long ago. He ordered two lunch sets to be delivered to you. Mr.York has made the payment, so please enjoy your meal. Please rate us five stars if you feel our food is to your liking.¡± Oh, so Zachary ordered the takeout for them. It was surprising to find the hotel manager hand delivered the lunch order. Tilting her head, Jasmine looked at her best friend with a smile on her face and envy in her eyes. It was rather thoughtful of Mr.York. He was bing increasingly nicer to her best friend. Chapter 160 Chapter 160 Chapter 160 Perhaps it would not be long before Serenity and Zachary turn into a real couple and live happily ever after. Snapping out of her thoughts, Serenity thanked the hotel manager and saw him off at the door. She watched as the manager got into the car and drove away before heading into the shop. As there were two lunch sets, the other share was without a doubt for Jasmine. By the time Serenity got back in, Jasmine had washed her hands and was seated behind the cash register. With her best friend approaching, she said with a smile, ¡°Come on and eat. The Wiltspoon Hotel is a seven¨Cstar hotel. We tried their food at the dinner party thest time. I couldn¡®t stop thinking about the delicious food after I got home. ¡°Thanks to you, I finally get to relive the taste.¡± Jasmine shoved the cutlery into Serenity¡®s hands whileplimenting Zachary with glee, ¡°I can¡®t believe Mr. York can be so thoughtful. He bought you lunch and had it delivered to you. He must feel bad that you¡®ve been having takeout for lunch. ¡°Serenity, Mr.York has a lot of redeeming qualities. Although he has his guard up and signed a six¨Cmonth contract with you, he might trash the agreement and be lifelong partners with you once you two spend some time together. Think about it.¡± Serenity burst outughing . ¡°You¡®ve already taken his side after he bought you lunch. I get along with him, but it doesn¡®t look like our rtionship is going to advance from here.¡± ¡°I¡®m not someone who can be bought with a single meal. Besides, you¡®re my best friend. No matter what happens or the circumstances, I will always be on your side. Compared to your brother¨Cinw, would you dare say that Mr. York is not one of the good guys?¡± The pair dug in and discussed the quality of men. ¡°My brother¨Cin¨C law used to be so good to my sister. His attitude changed for the worst ever since Sonny was born.¡± Human beings were fickle¨Cminded. Serenity and Zachary had only been married for a month, so they were not very familiar with each other yet. She still had a lot to learn about Zachary. They had not reached the stage to put themselves out there, showing their ws and strengths to one another. ¡°I think Mr.York is not like your brother¨Cinw. Mr.York¡®s strict, aloof, and gentlemanlike. Once you bag that kind of man, you can forget ever leaving his side. He¡®ll spoil you to the moon and back for sure.¡± Serenity grinned without a word. Nevertheless, Serenity was happy that Zachary delivered her a bountiful and delicious lunch. Before digging in, she snapped a photo and posted it on Facebook with the caption: (Special delivery from the husband.) Considering that she and Zachary kept their marriage under wraps, Serenity did not make the post visible to friends who were in the dark about her marriage. After lunch, Serenity saw off thest few students before calling Zachary. Zachary happened to be at the Wiltspoon Hotel for a luncheon with a few clients, where he could discuss business over lunch. With an iing call from Serenity, Zachary excused himself apologetically to the few CEOs, ¡°I need to take a call.¡± ¡°Be my guest, Mr. York.¡± The CEOs dly gestured for Zachary to go ahead. Having closed a deal with York Corporation, the CEOs were in the best of moods. They enjoyed a few bites and chatted while Zachary got up to take the call elsewhere. One of the CEOs asked Josh, who was also there, ¡°Mr.York¡®s outfit today doesn¡®t seem to be his usual attire.¡± Those with keen eyes picked up on Zachary¡®s change in his clothingbel Josh replied with a smile, ¡°Good catch, Mr. Williams. It¡®s indeed different. Um¡­ A girl, who he¡®s a little interested in, gave him the suit.¡±This is from N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 161 Chapter 161 Chapter 161 Surprised, the few CEOs immediately asked Josh, ¡°Mr.Bucham, does Mr.York have someone he likes? Do you know who the lucky girl is?¡± Fancy that. Even Zachary had a shot at love. The probability was slim to none. ¡°Shh¡­ You gotta keep it a secret or Mr.York will reproach me for being nosy and a bbermouth. Mr.York hasn¡®t fallen in love yet. He¡®s merely a bit interested in the girl. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Judging by his character, Mr.York will tell the whole world once he¡®s fallen head over heels with a girl.¡± Mr.York would put the word out there so admirers like Elisa would not harass him. The CEOs nodded their heads. It was good enough for them to find out that Mr. York was interested in girls. It got one of the CEOs thinking as he had a daughter who had reached marrying age. Since Mr. York was a straight guy, the CEO intended to bring his daughter along to observe during business discussions at York Corporation. Who knows? His daughter might catch Mr. York¡®s attention. The girl, who Mr.York had shown interest in, had not been formally introduced as his girlfriend. It was a fairpetition. Having no idea that his right¨Chand man had betrayed him, Zachary was delighted to get a call from his wife. A smile stered across his face. Of course, he kept his tone t and deep when talking to Serenity, ¡°Yes?¡± ¡°I just called to check in on you. Are you having a break? Am I bothering you?¡± Serenity was worried her call might be untimely since it was midday break. ¡°I¡®m having my lunch.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Serenity added. ¡°Why are you having ate lunch? I know things can be busy at work, but you must remember to have your meals on time. Don¡®t starve yourself.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± It was not the first time anyone showed Zachary concern, but Serenity¡®s thoughtful words gave him the warmest tingles. ¡°Um¡­ Mr. York, thank you for sending me lunch. The food was amazing. The dessert was fresh too.¡± The service of a major hotel was nothing short of impable. Zachary still reflected no emotions in his voice. ¡°I have ate lunch meeting at the Wiltspoon Hotel. You order takeout every day and it¡®s not the best thing to eat excessively, so I ordered a few dishes and had the manager arrange for delivery. ¡°Try and refrain from ordering takeout. If you like, I can arrange for daily food delivery from the hotel.¡± Zachary could put his trust in the hotel under hispany¡®s gship. Besides, he personally made the call to organize the whole thing. It was safer for Serenity to eat it than the takeout she ordered. ¡°Jasmine and I would get groceries and cook if we had time. We order takeout when we¡®re busy. Don¡®t make it a daily arrangement. The Wiltspoon Hotel is the best hotel in the city. The food is heavenly, but I¡®m sure it¡®s expensive. It¡®s fine to enjoy the hotel meals once in a while, but we can¡®t afford to have them every single day.¡± Zachary might be well¨Cpaid, but at the end of the day, he was working for somebody else. Serenity took home a monthly ie of around twenty thousand dors. With her online business booming this month, her earnings went up by a lot to an estimate of thirty thousand bucks. Although she earned more, Serenity would not waste her money unnecessarily. She saved 70% of her ie every month, either keeping it in the bank or investing in low risk wealth management products. Zachary paused before answering, ¡°Try to cook your own meals. Don¡®t order takeout anymore. I¡®m going to have food delivered to your shop if you get into the habit of ordering takeout. At worst, I¡®ll spend all my money on food.¡± ¡°Fine, fine. I¡®ll buy groceries at the supermarket near our ce to bring to the shop. I¡®ll make my own food instead of eating out. Don¡®t send me food from the hotel every day. We can¡®t afford the hefty price. Although we eat to live, it¡®s excessive to spend all your wages on food.¡± Zachary remained silent. In her eyes, he was only an ordinary wage earner. Even though Serenity knew he was a white¨Ccor worker, she had no clue about the figure of his sry. She was trying to save him money in case she ate him out of the house and home. It was clear that she was not a money¨Chungry woman. In fact, Zachary realized he Chapter 162 Chapter 162 Chapter 162 ¡°I got my sry today. I¡¯ll wire you the living expensester. Spend it on food and everything necessary. Don¡¯t be too frugal,¡± Zachary said. ¡°It¡¯s fine. We still have a chunk of change left from the hundred thousand dors you gave me thest time. We kept our household expenditures low, so not much of the money was used.¡± The furniture took away tens of thousands, but that was a one-time purchase. The remaining dozens of thousands could last the household for several months. Besides, Serenity was not going to spend his money all the time. ¡°Just save the unused portion. Men can be extravagant with their spending. Just keep the money that I¡¯ve wired to you. It can serve as an emergency fund. Otherwise, I¡¯ll burn through all my money.¡± Serenity gave it a thought before answering, ¡°Alright then.¡± She would keep a record of all the transactions. The money Zachary wired to her every month would be saved and put in writing. It would be easy to divide the money when they were to go down with the divorce. ¡°Mr.York, I shouldn¡¯t keep you from your work any longer.¡± ¡°I might be homete tonight. Just leave the door unlocked for me. No need to wait up.¡± Serenity had never stayed up to wait for his return. Still, Zachary had to bring that up. ¡°Sure.¡± Without another word, Serenity hung up the call. Zachary knew where Serenity stood. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She did not care whether he was home early orte. Sigh. This was part of the agreement they signed. She was not allowed to get involved in his affairs. After having a moment to himself, Zachary transferred twenty thousand bucks to her mobile device. Serenity epted the transaction. With Serenity taking the money, Zachary found himself in a better mood. It was only natural that the husband brought home the bacon while the wife spent the money. Serenity slumped over the cash register for a quick nap. She got some shuteye before pulling out her tools and materials to start on her craftwork. Sometimeter, a car was heard pulling up outside. As the clicking of high heels ensued , Serenity turned her head toward the noise. ¡°Ms.Stone?¡± Serenity cried in surprise. It was Elisa. Elisa nned to go on a beach vacation with her mother when Serenity suddenly came to mind. She thought about catching up with Serenity before the holidays since Serenity left asting impression on her. Elisa could not help but want to get closer to Serenity. LILI ¡°I finally found you.¡± Elisa handed over a bag. ¡°I¡¯ve been waiting for you to contact me, but I didn¡¯t get it. I found this ce through your absurd rtives. This is a little something for you.¡± It was an expensive skincare set. Serenity epted the bag of skincare without a fuss. She said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re too kind, Ms.Stone. You¡¯re wee to visit me, but you didn¡¯t have to get me a gift.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mind me being blunt. I bought extra, but I didn¡¯t need that many, so I brought you a set.¡± In fact, Elisa just bought the gift. She made up the story in case Serenity would not ept the expensive gift. Elisa did not want Serenity to feel like she needed to return the favor It was only a skincare set. Sure, it might be costly to ordinary people, but it did not cost much in Elisa¡¯s eyes. Chapter 163 Chapter 163 Chapter 163 ¡°Serenity, did you make these? They¡¯re beautiful.¡± Elisaplimented Serenity¡¯s handicraft. Picking up a newly made maneki ¨C neko for a closer look, Elisa praised, ¡°Wow, it¡¯s so pretty.¡± ¡°I can give you a few if you like, Ms. Stone. They¡¯re not worth much though.¡± ¡°I love them. I love them a lot.¡± Elisa nodded her head incessantly. ¡°Thank you.¡± She then asked, ¡°Do you sell these, Serenity?¡± ¡°Yes, I do. I have an online business, selling these knick knacks. Sales have been pretty good, and this month has been the best month yet.¡± Elisa replied with a smile, ¡°Send me the link to your online businesster. I¡¯ll share it on Facebook to drum up your business. They¡¯re really beautiful.¡± Having learned of Serenity¡¯s business, Elisa was more than happy to advertise Serenity¡¯s products. If a woman of her standards found Serenity¡¯s crafts appealing, others were bound to love her creations too. Those who might not share the same aesthetics would also help with Serenity¡¯s business since Elisa spoke for the products. Elisa¡¯s presence carried weight among the upper crust in Wiltspoon after all. ¡°Thank you, Ms.Stone. I appreciate it.¡± Serenity offered Elisa a seat while she poured Elisa a ss of water. After a brief exchange, Serenity inquired, ¡°Why the sudden visit? Do you need help with anything?¡¯ Of course, Serenity did not think there was anything she could help Elisa with since thetter was the heiress of Stone Group It was hard for Serenity to imagine that just a few days ago, her best friend was talking to her about the scandal between the heir of the Yorks and Elisa. Several dayster, Elisa came looking for her. It was as if they had been friends for years. Fate brought them together. Serenity was in disbelief of her good luck. It was an unlikely urrence to befriend a true heiress like Elisa, and even Jasmine whose family owned tens of millions in assets. Yet, Serenity, an ordinary citizen, crossed paths with them. Serenity decided to get two lottery tickets on her way home tonight. She might hit the jackpot and win millions. Elisa answered with a grin, ¡°There¡¯s always a reason to visit, right? Yes, I need your help with something.¡± Serenity looked at Elisa, waiting for her to speak. The way Serenity saw it, Elisa had everything going ¨C she had the looks, the bearings, the figure, and social status. Serenity bet Elisa would look cute together with the heir of the Yorks. However, Serenity had never met the heir, so she had no idea what he looked like. The heir of the Yorks wasughty and aloof. He must be a hunk for Elisa to go crazy over him. Serenity wondered to herself, ¡®Who¡¯s the better looking between the heir of the Yorks and my man?¡¯ The Yorks were one big family some centuries ago. ¡°Serenity, we made the trending news on Twitter, so you know what was up with me, and I know what went on in your life. I¡¯ll cut to the chase. Don¡¯tugh at me. I came to talk to you about Mr.York. You know that I like him a lot. I¡¯ve had a crush on him for many years. I¡¯ve thought about giving up, but I can¡¯t just put my feelings aside. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. I might as well profess my feelings to him and try to win his heart. ¡°We¡¯re both single and avable anyway. I¡¯m notmitting a fault, a crime, or something immoral to chase after him, but no one supports me. My sister-inw started off on my side, but she switched sides after my brother told her oil, ¡°We have only met, but we clicked immediately. I think of you as my friend, so I came to pour my heart out to you. Am I wrong to love somebody? What¡¯s wrong with pursuing him?¡± Elisa was in distress. Chapter 164 Chapter 164 Chapter 164 Not only was Elisa¡¯s family against her courting Zachary, but her best friends also persuaded her to let it go, saying that it was not an easy pursuit with Zachary. Besides, her family and the Yorks were rivals in business. Only Serenity encouraged her to go for it. Elisa clung to Serenity, deeming thetter to be her confidante. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t go after Mr.York despite his brilliance if he had a wife or girlfriend. I¡¯m a good catch, so I don¡¯t need to steal someone else¡¯s man. The fact is that he¡¯s single. Now that I¡¯ve found the one, I must put it into action and try. Even if nothinges out of it, I won¡¯t regret trying.¡± Elisa let it all out of her chest. Serenity had caught wind about Elisa¡¯s haughtiness, but she had the means to be lofty, spoiled, and willful after all. All Serenity saw in Elisa was an ordinary lovesick girl. It appeared to Serenity that Elisa was in a positive frame of mind, Elisa had a non distorted outlook on life. Serenity had overheard some gossip about Mr.York when she apanied her best friend to the dinner party the other night Serenity knew that the man had been single. The heir of the Yorks always had bodyguards around him to stop any young women from getting close. He never gave any young women a chance. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Nevertheless, Elisa was bold to profess her feelings publicly and became the talk of the town together with Mr.York. ¡°You aren¡¯t wrong, Ms.Stone. Everybody has the right to go after true love. As you said, Mr.York is single without a girlfriend in sight. You¡¯re single without a boyfriend too. It¡¯s not illegal or against morality and ethics for you to woo him. It¡¯s normal for you to act this way.¡± Elisa bobbed her head. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re the first person ever to give me the green light to woo Mr. York.¡± Serenity smiled, realizing, atst, the reason Elisa came to look for her. El¨ªsa wanted to confide in the one person who took her side and stood behind her when she could not get the support of her friends and family. ¡°Serenity, have you ever dated anyone?¡± ¡°Me? I saw a guy once during college. The rtionship kind of fizzled out when we walked different paths after graduation¡± Many student couples ended their rtionship and went their separate ways after graduating from school, Such was the case with Serenity and her first love. ¡°Um¡­ Who went after who? Do you have experience making the first move on men? Teach me a few tricks of your own.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°Hm¡­ It was more of puppy love for my first rtionship. It ended as soon as it began. It wasn¡¯t the case of who initiated the rtionship. We started seeing each other. Then we developed feelings for each other and grew close. ¡°We went to the mall and enjoyed good meals at the restaurants. We graduated before we could even hold hands. We split up and went our own way after that.¡± Elisa was dumbstruck for a moment before she found her voice. ¡°That¡¯s terrible , Serenity. The rtionship ended before you could hold hands. It¡¯s like it ended before it started.¡± ¡°It was regrettable. My dating experience has been nk since graduation.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay. I¡¯ll be single with you.¡± Serenity burst intoughter. ¡°I don¡¯t think there¡¯s anything bad about being single. I have my freedom. Family bes your responsibility when you get married. It¡¯s not as good as being single.¡± Just like her sister Although Serenity was no longer single, she signed a contract with Zachary. It was a marriage of convenience. Since they were not to disclose their marriage to anyone, Serenity felt her life now was no different than her singlehood. Chapter 165 Chapter 165 Chapter 165 ¡°Girls chasing after boys is really not that different from guys chasing after girls. Invest in his interest and hang in there. Your efforts will see you through . He¡¯s bound to say yes if you keep asking him out.¡± Elisa gave it a thought before replying, ¡°I know I should persevere and stick with it. To be honest, my sister-inw initiated the first move on my brother. I saw the whole thing. My brother was like Mr.York at the time ¨C lofty, detached, and unconcerned. ¡°My sister-inw was all over my brother every day and eventually wore my brother down with her persistence. There was a time my sister-inw wanted to give up and stopped turning up anywhere near my brother. The surprising thing was that my brother got used to her being around. Her absence and intention to back out of his life turned him to being more forward with his feelings. ¡°Now my brother¡¯s known in Wiltspoon for worshiping the ground his wife walks on.¡± Elisa was most envious of her brother and sister-inw¡¯s marriage. It started off tough when her sister-inw went after her brother, just like what Elisa was experiencing now. However, her brother got it bad for her sister-inw thereafter, After marriage, her brother remained crazy about her sister-inw. It never urred to Serenity that the wife of Stone Group¡¯s CEO initiated the courtship and won her man¡¯s heart in the end. Serenity said with a smile. ¡°Your sister inw is a sessful example. You should get the know how from her.¡± ¡°She won¡¯t help me now because my brother told her not to. She tried to fight for me, but since my family won¡¯t budge, my sister-inw simply went with the flow.¡± Serenity gave Elisa a sympathetic look. An heiress of a wealthy family probably did not have much of a say in her marriage. Serenity heard that many marriages among the rich and powerful were arranged. ¡°What does he like? You could give him that as a gift every day. The way to a man¡¯s heart is through his stomach. Present him with different food every day. Keep going even if he shuts you out and embarrasses you. He might ept you one day. ¡°You mentioned that your brother got used to having your sister-inw around. He only realized he couldn¡¯t be without her when your sister-inw walked away. Well, isn¡¯t that an idea too? ¡°You could also create some intentional coincidences. Wait for him along one of his usual routes and y the damsel in distress or something. He¡¯ll help you so long as his heart isn¡¯t made of stone. That should give you a chance to get on with him.¡± Serenity gave Elisa a few suggestions that she believed were useful, showing her how to go about having some alone time with Mr.York through intentional encounters. She believed their feelings could be developed once the pair got together. Of course, there was something called love at first sight too. Nevertheless, not everyone could feel the butterflies in their stomach at first encounters. Elisa believed Serenity was on to something. She uttered gratefully, ¡°Thank you for the advice. I¡¯ll reward you handsomely if I ever marry into the York family and be Mrs.York one day.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°You can just invite me to the wedding.¡± The upper crust would hold the wedding reception at the finest hotel. Serenity was all about the food. ¡°Of course.You¡¯ll be my maid of honor should I win Mr.York¡¯s heart.¡± ¡°You go, girl! I¡¯ll be waiting to be your maid of honor.¡± Serenity cheered Elisa on, giving her support and encouragement ¡°Okay. I can do it. I¡¯ll snag the man!¡± ¡°Um¡­ Can I be honest with you about something?¡± Elisa answered, ¡°¡­ What? Are you telling me you¡¯ve been dishonest with me?¡± Serenity responded with a smile, ¡°Well, no. I¡¯ve read the gossip about you and Mr.York. The tabloids painted you as a spoiled and willful person who isn¡¯t the easiest to get along with. I can¡¯t say I know you well enough since you and I had only just met. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. You might want to change for the better if that¡¯s the media¡¯s depiction of you. Perhaps Mr.York¡¯s put off by that type of girl.¡± Chapter 166 Chapter 166 Chapter 166 Elisa was rendered speechless. Was she bratty and willful? Come to think of it, Elisa had to admit that she did act like a spoiled brat. It wasrgely because she was the apple of the Stones¡® eye. Her family¡®s love did not give her a stuck¨Cup attitude, but Elisa was not the easiest person to get along with. She would not hesitate to kick out anyone who had gotten on her list of dislikes if she found them hanging around her. She had no consideration for other people¡®s feelings. Even her rtives were not spared from her wrath. It took a while before Elisa gratefully said to Serenity,¡° Thank you for telling me this, Serenity. No one ever talked to me about changing my bad behavior.¡± Serenity thought to herself, ¡®Who would say something so blunt to your face?¡® She made a bold suggestion because she did not belong in Elisa¡®s circle. Besides, Elisa saw Serenity as her love guru. ¡°Seren.¡± Having woken up from her afternoon nap, Jasmine came out when she overheard Serenity talking with someone. She rubbed her eyes when she saw Elisa. Oh, it was a stranger. Nevertheless , there was just something familiar about the girl. Jasmine felt like she had seen the girl somewhere before. Jasmine had never met Elisa in person. The only reason she found Elisa familiar was because Jasmine had seen a photograph of Elisa online. While gossiping about Mr.York and Elisa , Jasmine had once told her best friend that the pair were a good match for each other. ¡°You¡®re up, Jasmine.¡± Serenity beckoned her best friend over and introduced her to Elisa. ¡°Ms.Stone, this is my best friend and partner of this shop, Jasmine.¡± Elisa did not hit it off with Jasmine as she did with Serenity, but out of respect for Serenity, she magnanimously nodded at Jasmine as a greeting. Jasmine froze the moment she found out that the proud and beautiful woman turned out to be the sister of Stone Group¡®s CEO who had been fearlessly asking Mr.York out. Her opened jaw and wide eyes amused Elisa. While Elisa clicked with Serenity and was willing to share her secrets, she mmed up in the presence of others. This is from N?velDrama.Org. With Jasmine up from her nap, Elisa got up and excused herself. ¡°Ms.Stone, this maneki¨Cneko is for you.¡± Serenity gave Elisa the maneki¨Cneko intended for Zachary. She and Zachary were married, so it should not matter if she were to dy her gift to Zachary by a few days. Elisa happily epted the gift and asked for the link to Serenity¡®s online business. As Serenity wrapped the lucky cat in a gift bag, Elisa said, ¡°I¡®ll be going away to the beach for a holiday with my mom in the afternoon. We have a beachfront estate there and lots of fresh seafood to eat. I¡¯ll bring you some when Ie back.¡± Serenity loved seafood too much to miss out on it. ¡°I look forward to it.¡± Now Serenity was Elisa¡®s kind of gal. Serenity would readily ept and reject gifts depending on whether the gift was to her liking or necessity. There was no mincing or pretense getting in the way. Serenity was forting with her emotions and intentions. Elisa wanted Serenity as a friend for sure! In fact, Elisa was not a snob. She was willing to befriend anybody who she got along with, regardless of ss and status. She was quite like Grandma May in that sense. Chapter 167 Chapter 167 Chapter 167 Once Elisa was gone, Jasmine asked curiously, ¡°Seren, how did you know Ms.Stone? She even came to the shop to look for you.¡± Serenity told Jasmine the whole story about Elisa gging her e¨Cbike down and sending Elisa to York Corporation. Jasmine replied after a pause, ¡°Really?¡± Props to Elisa for her courage and tenacity to go after the heir of the York. ¡°I think Ms. Stone isn¡®t as unreasonable as described in the rumors. She¡®s only haughty because of her upbringing. She hasn¡®t lost perspective on life though. While she loves Mr.York, she said she wouldn¡®t ask Mr.York out if he was taken.¡± Elisa¡®s pride kept her froming in between someone else¡®s rtionship Jasmine concurred , ¡°She sounds like a great gal. We¡®re not in her circle, so we wouldn¡®t know her true character without engaging with her. The rumors can¡®t be trustedpletely. Sometimes, seeing is not believing either, let alone hearsays.¡± Since Elisa held prestige in ss, many who were jealous of her might spread the word that she was obnoxious, bossy, and rude. Elisa¡®s visit did not affect Serenity whatsoever. She kept to her routine while Jasmine started to wear Serenity down about attending Mrs. so¨Cand¨Cso¡®s birthday party with her. ¡°The party will be held at the Dawsons¡® mansion. The Dawsons are neighbors with my aunt. Plus, they do business together. My aunt wouldn¡®t ask me to tag along if it weren¡®t because she had a good rtionship with the family. Come with me, Seren. My aunt is trying to set me up with her neighbor¡®s oldest son.¡± Jasmine vaguely remembered the Dawsons¡® son. Since she often spent time at her aunt¡®s ce, Jasmine had met the neighbors. The young heir of the Dawson family was plump and mediocre at best when it came to looks. No one would do a double¨Ctake at the man on the streets if he was not born into wealth and power. Not everybody in higher society had a pretty face. ¡°Mrs. Lowe¡®s taking you to fix you up for a date. Why should Ie along? It¡®s different this time. It¡®s Mrs.Dawson¡®s birthday party. I¡®m not going.¡± Serenity would not budge, refusing to apany her best friend to another party. There would be many at the event, but less than a handful whom Serenity would know. She would only go there for the food. Although she was a foodie, it did not mean she would bury her face in food all the time. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Serenity did not want to embarrass herself either. The upper crust would not be caught dead stuffing their face, unlike her. ¡°You¡®re my best friend. Come and check out the guy for me.¡± ¡°Your aunt will see if the guy is a good fit for you without my help. Mrs.Lowe has more experience anyway. She¡®s been through it all. Not to mention, you¡®re her niece. She¡®ll only want the best for you. You should give it a go since she intends to set you up with the Dawsons¡® son. ¡°It¡®s better than the so¨C called fine men your mom introduced you to.¡± Jasmine responded, ¡°The guy isn¡®t good¨Clooking at all. He¡®s short and fat. He¡®s still single at thirty¨Cfive years old because he doesn¡®t have the looks. For that reason, Mrs. Dawson is growing anxious and has be less fussy about marrying in the same social ss. ¡°My aunt saw it as a chance for me to marry up. She doesn¡®t have my best interest at heart. I don¡®t want to go. My aunt even called my mom, so both of them can gang up on me. I had no choice but to give in to their request. My mom has been nagging now more than ever about us being at the same age, but you¡®re married while I¡®m still single. Is it wrong to be single at twenty¨Cfive?¡± It really put Jasmine on the spot. It was not like she was thirty¨C five. Yet, her mother and aunt kept badgering her about tying the knot. Her mother was not as pushy before Serenity got hitched. Now that Serenity said goodbye to singlehood, everything Jasmine did seemed wrong in her mother¡®s eyes. Jasmine¡®s mother could find fault even in the air that she breathed. She believed she could forget ever finding peace until she started dating. ¡°So, you don¡®t like the Dawsons¡® son because he¡®s ugly.¡± Serenity believed it was not all about social ss for Mrs. Lowe. Character was important too. Jasmine was her niece no matter what. Mrs.Lowe would not push her niece to a terrible man unless she wanted to break ties with Jasmine¡®s family. Chapter 168 Chapter 168 Chapter 168 Jasmine pursed her lips. ¡°He¡®s a little ugly. I¡®m scared that my baby will turn out hideous if I marry an ugly man.Your situation is the best. Since you and your husbands have the looks, your baby will turn out beautiful.¡± She would rather marry a motivated wage earner like her best friend. So what if Mr.York was not born with a silver spoon? He worked hard to get to a senior white¨Ccor position at York Corporation. Anyone who could get into the York Corporation¡®s headquarters was an elite among elites. Serenity replied after a brief pause , ¡°You should spend less time on your chick lits. I think you read too much and now you imagine yourself meeting a young, handsome, and rich CEO like the female characters in your books. The young CEO only has eyes and the hots for the leadingdy. Jasmine , that¡®s all fiction. Where are you going to find that many young CEOs in real life? ¡°The CEO of York Corporation is young, but he took over the family business that has been around for years. How can other menpete with a man who was born with a silver spoon? I¡®m sure you know meeting a CEO like Mr. York is impossible, let alone chasing him.¡± Jasmine opened her mouth to justify her thoughts, but no words escaped her lips. She had nothing to say. Anybody would love to be the leadingdy of a romance novel Nevertheless , Jasmine was not trying to bag some big ¨C shot CEO. She did not have a thing for that kind of man. ¡°Seren, please go with me one more time.¡± ¡°Not happening.¡± ¡°Are we still friends, Seren?¡± Serenity did not bother to pick her head up. ¡°We are.¡± ¡°Shouldn¡®t you be helping out a friend in need?¡± ¡°I¡®ll help you when you¡®re in need, but you¡®re going on a blind date. Don¡®t expect me to save you from an innocent date.¡± Jasmine pleaded, ¡°Seren, just this once. I promise. It¡®s just this once. Think about the food!¡± ¡°Our lunch from the Wiltspoon Hotel today was delicious.¡± Seeing that her best friend would not stop with the pleas, Serenity had to pull out the big guns. ¡°I¡®m going on a date with my man to bond.¡± Jasinine was at a loss for words. It did not go unnoticed that Jasmine gave her best friend a intive look the whole afternoon. Serenity toughened herself up against her best friend¡®s resentful eyes as she refused to apany Jasmine to another event. Since Zachary would not be home early due to a business engagement, Serenity stayed at the shop and told Jasmine to get off work early. Unable to persuade her best friend, Jasmine took her purse and went home. As Serenity was alone at the shop with nothing much to do, she called her sister and found out that her brother¨Cin w still had note home. Serenity sighed to herself. It was likely her sister¡®s marriage would notst long. It was not that she wanted Liberty and Hank back together, but Serenity felt bad for her nephew. Children were the ones who would be most affected by their parents¡® separation. Sonny was only two years old and had always been in Liberty¡®s care. Her sister would have a higher chance of winning custody if she had a source of ie.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Chapter 169 Chapter 169 Chapter 169 It was eleven o¡®clock at night by the time Serenity closed the shop. She rode her e¨Cbike home. ¡°Drive safe, Serenity.¡± The female store owner from next door graciously said. Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°I will.¡± Watching Serenity¡®s receding figure, the female store owner muttered, ¡°She¡®s such an independent child with a sad past. It was a good thing she stood up to her bloodsucking rtives and refused to sumb to their absurd demands. ¡°Just watch her. Serenity will rise above all the bad. Her good fortune is written in the stars, and she¡®s bound for sess. Things are difficult before they are easy. Those who picked on her will be sorry.¡± The female store owner then nced at her husband and pursed her lips. ¡°You¡®re always into the mystic mumbo jumbo. Why don¡®t you start a business on fortune telling or something? Why don¡®t you give me a reading? When will I be rich? ¡°Hurry up and move the stuff into the shop so we can close for the day. We should wash up and get some sleep.¡± It was unlikely that her husband would be an expert at reading tarot cards after flipping through a few books on astrology. Anyone could be a fortune teller if it were that easy. Serenity reached home at half past eleven at night. She opened the door to the house and was weed by darkness. Since Zachary was not home yet, she left the door unlocked The huge house was only upied by the duo. The ce appeared rather deserted as the couple were often at work. Feeling a little hungry, Serenity went into the kitchen and opened the fridge to check for existing ingredients. In the end, she took out butter, milk, and parmesan cheese to make a nice te of macaroni and cheese. Following a rattle at the door, Serenity came out of the kitchen and watched Zachary enter the house. ¡°You¡®re back, Mr.York.¡± Zachary turned his head around to look at her and hummed a response. After locking the door behind him, he approached her and asked, ¡°Did you just get back?¡± ¡°Jasmine had to leave early, so I was on duty at the shop tonight. I usually get home at half¨Cpast eleven at night. I¡®m making mac and cheese for supper. Do you want some?¡± Zachary shook his head. ¡°No, thank you.¡± Food and drinks were served during his social engagement tonight, so he was not hungry. Since Zachary did not want supper, Serenity only made a te of mac and cheese for herself. Seeing that Zachary quietly sat on the sofa without turning the TV on or looking at his phone, Serenity got the impression that he was bothered by something. This is from N?velDrama.Org. She asked out of concern, ¡°Do you have something on your mind, Mr.York?¡± ¡°No.¡± Zachary pulled out his phone and put it on the coffee table before standing back up to take off his suit jacket. He then stared at Serenity. Taking the hint, Serenity put down her te and went to take his suit jacket. With a smile, she inquired, ¡°Should I take off the tie for you?¡± She was happy to be of service to a hunk. Zachary¡®s silence was his consent. Hence, Serenity attentively removed his tie and examined it before saying, ¡°You tie looks familiar. Did I buy this for you?¡°. Zachary murmured to himself, ¡°That took a while.¡® Still, he remained his usual nk face and gave a nod. Serenity was surprised as she thought he would not wear the clothes she got him. It was unexpected of him to wear them to work right away. ¡°Should I wash the jacket and tie for you?¡± ¡°No. Just hang them up. I¡®ll put the washer onter.¡± The couple had their individual washing machine in their rooms. They did their ownundry. After hanging the suit jacket up as told, Serenity went to sit down at the dining table. She took out her phone to scroll the news while enjoying her mac and cheese. ¡°Is my maneki ¨C neko ready?¡± Zachary asked out of the blue. Chapter 170 Chapter 170 Chapter 170 ¡°I¡¯ve made the maneki-neko, but Ms. Stone saw and loved the creation when she suddenly came to visit me. I thought since we live together, I can make it up to you at any time.¡± ck in the face, Zachary fixated his profound eyes on her. Serenity asked cautiously, ¡°Are you angry, Mr.York?¡± Zachary scowled and spoke in an icy tone, ¡°How can I not be angry when you gave something meant for me to someone else without my permission?¡± To make things worse, Serenity gave it to Elisa! Did Serenity know that Elisa was chasing her husband? How could she give away his maneki-neko to herpetition? That was generous of her! Serenity stopped looking at her phone. Holding her te of mac and cheese, she made her way toward Zachary while eating. She sat down next to Zachary and said fawningly, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mr.York. It¡¯s my fault. I¡¯ll make it up to you tomorrow. Don¡¯t be mad.¡± Zachary red at her rather grimly. His lips were pressed together tightly. Property ? 2024 N0(v)elDrama.Org. Since Zachary had not cooled off, Serenity slid her te of mac and cheese to him. ¡°Why don¡¯t you have my supper?¡± Zachary winced his face. ¡°How can you give me something you¡¯ve already taken a bite out of?¡± He was a little OCD when it came to sharing food. He was not going to eat food that had been touched. ¡°I only took a few bites. Forget it if you mind. I¡¯m hungry anyway.¡± Serenity immediately withdrew her hand and went back to digging in her mac and cheese. ¡°Man, I¡¯m a good cook. I can make an ordinary te of mac and cheese taste exquisite. Well, your loss.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t change the subject, Serenity. We¡¯re talking about the maneki-neko.¡± ¡°I gave it away. You can¡¯t expect me to ask it back from Ms.Stone. Ms.Stone mentioned that she¡¯s going to have a beach holiday with her mother. She probably isn¡¯t in the city anymore. Besides, I don¡¯t know where Ms.Stone lives.¡± The residences of the rich must be luxurious and equipped with the best security system. Even if Serenity knew the location of Ms.Stone¡¯s home, she probably would not make it past the gates. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. It¡¯s my fault I shouldn¡¯t have given Ms. Stone the mancki-nicko that was supposed to be for you. without asking you. She said it was pretty and she liked it a lot, sol gave it to lier. How about this, Mr.York? I¡¯ll give you two more ¨C one maneki-neko and a golden dragon. What do you think?¡± She should keep in mind never to give others the stuff that was meant for him. Otherwise , he would be furious. It never crossed her mind that he was so¡­ principled. Alright. It was her fault. The tension along Zachary¡¯s jaw eased up. ¡°It better not happen again.¡± For her to give away things that were supposed to be his, Zachary got the feeling that she did not appreciate or care about him. Speaking of which, Serenity had not realized that the suit jacket he just took off was her gift to him. The girl was usually witty and perceptive. Yet today, it was as though she was blind. Even Josh could tell his clothes were different today. Despite living together with him, Serenity did not seem to pick up on that. As Zachary sat in frustration , his rxed facial muscles began tensing up once more. Nodding her head, Serenity promised, ¡°There won¡¯t be a next time.¡± She would not dare try that again to a person of principle. It took an extra dragon for him to let go of the matter. Although her handicrafts were not of much mary value, Serenity spent hours on manualbor. ¡°Mr.York.¡± Serenity was almost finished with her food when she stole a nce at Zachary¡¯s still agitated face. She then had a painful decision to fold. ¡°How about you pick a design you like, and I¡®ll make it exclusively for you?¡± Chapter 171 Chapter 171 Chapter 171 Peering at Serenity¡®s pasta dish, Zachary was feeling bummed out. There she was, eating well. How could she be sitting next to him, enjoying her meal while he was upset? The girl¡­ was heartless. Ultimately, they were different from other couples. Theirs was a marriage of convenience without feelings involved. Bottling up his frustration, Zachary asked glumly, ¡°Isn¡®t Ms.Stone the heiress of Stone Group? Why did she look for you? Since when have you two been acquainted?¡± Zachary yed dumb despite knowing the answer as he got his intel directly from Elisa. He never once mentioned Elisa in Serenity¡®s presence. Serenity recounted the story of how she met Elisa to Zachary. It aligned with Elisa¡®s version of events. ¡°Ms.Stone came and opened up to me about her feelings for the heir of the Yorks. Her decision to chase after Mr. York wasn¡®t quite well received by her family. She was feeling down and asked me for ideas to make advances at Mr.York.¡± Zachary raised his brow. Did Elisa actually seek Serenity¡®s help to woo him? With a deadpan face, he asked Serenity, ¡°What suggestions did you give? Have you ever gone after boys?¡± ¡°I don¡®t have the experience. My first rtionship ended as soon as it began. I¡®m basically a nk te when ites to rtionships.¡± Tilting her head, Serenity nced at Zachary and added. ¡°Of course, I¡®m better than you. You¡®re more of a nk state than I am. Haha. You jumped when I touched your face. You¡®re wary of me as if I¡®m some pervert.¡± Zachary grimaced and gave Serenity a dirty look. Serenity let out a chuckle before turning her attention back to her te of pasta. She even licked the te of remaining cheese sauce clean. After she was done, she gave herself a pat on the back. ¡°My mac and cheese is the best.¡± ¡°Let¡®s have pasta tomorrow.¡± Huh? Zachary extended his arm out to poke her forehead before telling her off. ¡°Aren¡®t you trying to get me to eat since you keep bragging about your mac and cheese? We¡®ll have it tomorrow then.¡± Serenity pped his hand away. ¡°I¡®m pretty good at cooking. Your family said my food was delicious. Alright then. I¡®ll make you some pasta tomorrow if that¡®s what you want.¡± ¡°Did you give Ms.Stone any tips on chasing Mr.York?¡± ¡°I guess so. I taught her all the know¨Chow to harass Mr.York. She should y a damsel in distress on the route that Mr. York often takes. I¡¯m sure he¡®de to her rescue so long as his heart isn¡®t made of stone. They would have a chance to spend time together if Mr. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. York extends a helping hand. ¡°Feelings are developed through bonding time. All they need is a chance to be alone. I don¡®t know what Mr.York looks like. He was at the party Jasmine dragged me to. However, the crowd was all over him. Plus, he had a group of bodyguards. I didn¡®t manage to see him in person.¡± Serenity kept her gaze on Zachary while talking. ¡°You can¡®t even meet your boss at your workce, never mind outsiders. If I have a say, your boss is too proud of a man. He refuses to give time to Ms.Stone. I¡®m sure he¡®ll fall in love with Ms. Stone if he gets to know her.¡± It took everything in Zachary to force his raging fury back down. Still maintaining a straight face, he said callously,¡° My boss will never fall in love with Ms.Stone. Serenity, you best stay out of it. Should one day my boss find out you were the one giving Ms.Stone advice on courtship, he might take his anger out on you. Your bookshop would probably close down. ¡°Not to mention, your husband might lose his job.¡± Blinking her eyes, Serenity asked, ¡°Is your boss that petty? Everybody has the right to love. What¡®s so wrong with Ms. Stone loving him? I heard that no one has ever asked him out, nor does he have a girlfriend even though he¡®s old and practically a middle¨Caged man. Since Ms.Stone took the initiative to chase after him, it means he has his charms. He should be thanking Ms.Stone for that.¡± What kind of logic was that? Chapter 172 Chapter 172 Chapter 171 Peering at Serenity¡®s pasta dish, Zachary was feeling bummed out. There she was, eating well. How could she be sitting next to him, enjoying her meal while he was upset? The girl¡­ was heartless. Ultimately, they were different from other couples. Theirs was a marriage of convenience without feelings involved. Bottling up his frustration, Zachary asked glumly, ¡°Isn¡®t Ms.Stone the heiress of Stone Group? Why did she look for you? Since when have you two been acquainted?¡± Zachary yed dumb despite knowing the answer as he got his intel directly from Elisa. He never once mentioned Elisa in Serenity¡®s presence. Serenity recounted the story of how she met Elisa to Zachary. It aligned with Elisa¡®s version of events. ¡°Ms.Stone came and opened up to me about her feelings for the heir of the Yorks. Her decision to chase after Mr.York wasn¡®t quite well received by her family. She was feeling down and asked me for ideas to make advances at Mr.York.¡± Zachary raised his brow. Did Elisa actually seek Serenity¡®s help to woo him? With a deadpan face, he asked Serenity, ¡°What suggestions did you give? Have you ever gone after boys?¡± ¡°I don¡®t have the experience. My first rtionship ended as soon as it began. I¡®m basically a nk te when ites to rtionships.¡± Tilting her head, Serenity nced at Zachary and added. ¡°Of course, I¡®m better than you. You¡®re more of a nk state than I am. Haha. You jumped when I touched your face. You¡®re wary of me as if I¡®m some pervert.¡± Zachary grimaced and gave Serenity a dirty look. Serenity let out a chuckle before turning her attention back to her te of pasta. She even licked the te of remaining cheese sauce clean. After she was done, she gave herself a pat on the back. ¡°My mac and cheese is the best.¡± ¡°Let¡®s have pasta tomorrow.¡± Huh? Zachary extended his arm out to poke her forehead before telling her off. ¡°Aren¡®t you trying to get me to eat since you keep bragging about your mac and cheese? We¡®ll have it tomorrow then.¡± Serenity pped his hand away. ¡°I¡®m pretty good at cooking. Your family said my food was delicious. Alright then. I¡®ll make you some pasta tomorrow if that¡®s what you want.¡± ¡°Did you give Ms.Stone any tips on chasing Mr.York?¡± ¡°I guess so. I taught her all the know¨Chow to harass Mr.York. She should y a damsel in distress on the route that Mr.York often takes. I¡¯m sure he¡®de to her rescue so long as his heart isn¡®t made of stone. They would have a chance to spend time together if Mr.York extends a helping hand. ¡°Feelings are developed through bonding time. All they need is a chance to be alone. I don¡®t know what Mr.York looks like. He was at the party Jasmine dragged me to. However, the crowd was all over him. Plus, he had a group of bodyguards. I didn¡®t manage to see him in person.¡± Serenity kept her gaze on Zachary while talking. ¡°You can¡®t even meet your boss at your workce, never mind outsiders. If I have a say, your boss is too proud of a man. He refuses to give time to Ms.Stone. I¡®m sure he¡®ll fall in love with Ms. This is from N?velDrama.Org. Stone if he gets to know her.¡± It took everything in Zachary to force his raging fury back down. Still maintaining a straight face, he said callously,¡° My boss will never fall in love with Ms.Stone. Serenity, you best stay out of it. Should one day my boss find out you were the one giving Ms.Stone advice on courtship, he might take his anger out on you. Your bookshop would probably close down. ¡°Not to mention, your husband might lose his job.¡± Blinking her eyes, Serenity asked, ¡°Is your boss that petty? Everybody has the right to love. What¡®s so wrong with Ms.Stone loving him? I heard that no one has ever asked him out, nor does he have a girlfriend even though he¡®s old and practically a middle¨Caged man. Since Ms.Stone took the initiative to chase after him, it means he has his charms. He should be thanking Ms.Stone for that.¡± What kind of logic was that? Chapter 173 Chapter 173 Chapter 173 ¡°I have a suggestion, but I¡¯m on Ms Stone¡¯s side, so I can¡¯t tell you about it ¡± Grabbing her te and utensils, Serenity got up and went to the kitchen Zachary quietly watched as her figure disappeared into the kitchen A whileter, he rose to his feet and walked over Leaning against the kitchen door frame, he asked solemnly, ¡°You¡¯ve only just met Ms. Stone Why are you on her side already?¡± ¡°Ms.Whose side would you think I¡¯ll take? Ms Stone is my type of gal What¡¯s wrong with supporting her to go for Mr York¡¯ ¡°Your boss must be a lofty person Wait till Ms Stone has him wrapped around her little fingers. He¡¯ll be all over her Hahaha. Let¡¯s see if he¡¯s going to be haughty then Isn¡¯t it a fun storyline? I can write a book out of 11 ¡°I have a lot of free time at the shop If the sales of my online business aren¡¯t doing too well. I should try to write a book. That¡¯s another way to earn a living I bet a book about Ms Stone chasing after Mr.York will be a best seller!¡± She sure was all about making money Was the allowance he gave him insufficient? The only thing on her mind seemed to generating revenue ¡°My boss won¡¯t be swayed by Ms. stand by my boss¡± Zachary was getting the hang of lying. Lying came naturally now. ¡°How about a bet? Let¡¯s bet on whether Ms.Stone can bag, your boss. What say you? I¡¯ll owe you three favors if you win, but it must be within my capabilities. If you lose, you can doundry, cook, and clean the house. That means you¡¯re responsible for all the house chores for two months. Zachary readily agreed to the terms. ¡°I¡¯ll get it in writing, so we can sign it. I don¡¯t want you. going back on your word.¡± Turning around, Zachary was on his way to draw up a wagering contract. With Zachary being so confident to draw up a contract, Serenity began to waver. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Zachary had no chance to get close to his boss despite working at York Corporation, but he knew more about Mr.York than she did. While most men would find Ms.Stone hard to resist, could Mr.York hold out against Ms. Stone¡¯s persistent flirtations? There was another thing. What if the heir of the Yorks had a problem as she presumed? He could be swinging the other way. Hence why he was never seen on the news with a woman. He would not be swept off his feet by Ms.Stone¡¯s advances. ¡°Mr.York! Mr.York!¡± After getting too much into her head, Serenity followed closely behind Zachary and asked, ¡± ** Are all the people around your boss men, Mr. York? I mean, is your boss¡¯s secretary a guy? Is the secretary handsome?¡± With his dark eyes glistening, Zachary spoke in a husky voice, ¡°What¡¯s wrong with hiring a male secretary? Many executives have male secretaries. The ratio between male and female secretaries is about the same.¡± Serenity had an aha moment. Since Zachary grabbed a pen and paper and sat down at the table to draw up the contract, she threw herself onto the table to hold down the sheet of paper. She also snatched the pen out of Zachary¡¯s hand. Raising his brow, Zachary stared at her with his profound and dark eyes. ¡°Um¡­ Hehe¡­ Uh¡­ Mr.York, we don¡¯t have to put it in writing.¡± Zachary smirked. ¡°What? Can¡¯t take the heat?¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. I can¡¯t. I don¡¯t feel certain. What if your boss likes hunks or has a problem in the manhood department? I would lose. Maybe we shouldn¡¯t sign the wager.¡± Zachary was lost for words. He liked men? Chapter 174 Chapter 174 Chapter 174 Josh would be the first to quit and stay as far away as possible if Zachary were interested in men. Problem with his manhood? Zachary had not fallen head over heels for Serenity. Well, he would show her once he took a fancy to her and consummate the marriage! It took a while before Zachary got up and made an abrupt exit to his room. He mmed the door behind him. The loud bang was a reflection of his foul mood. Serenity waited until he closed his bedroom door before getting up. She picked up the paper, crumpled it into a ball, and tossed it into the bin while mumbling under her breath, ¡°It was a good thing I thought it through. Otherwise, I¡¯d have lost to him.¡± The lesson today was not to make a bet before getting full intel on the opponent. There was a risk of things blowing up in her face. As for her proposal of a wager and her sudden change of heart, Serenity was not concerned at all. It was normal to back out of a deal since they had not signed a contract. While humming a tune, Serenity turned off the living room lights and returned to her little haven. She sprawled on the bed to y on her phone before washing up and turning in for the night. The following morning, Serenity rout pproached her window and withdrew the heavy curtains. With the window pushed open, a chill crept into her room. Shivering in the cold, she quickly closed the windows. By the looks of the gray sky, it was going to rain. The earlier chill announced the drop in temperature. Since Wiltspoon and Annenburg were in the same region, the weather was roughly the same. It was cold in the mornings and nights duringte fall and early winter. Once the sun rose, so would the temperature. It would be warm then. The temperature drop along with the rain was only a reminder to the people that it was time toyer up with a thin jacket. Serenity stretched and went to brush her teeth. She then changed out of her pajamas and went from her bedroom to the kitchen to make Zachary a pasta dish. That was his request yesterday. Opening the fridge door, Serenity realized that they were out of fresh produce. The milk was barely enough. She also ran out of cheese which was essential for any pasta dish. Serenity decided to make a quick run to the market. She exited the kitchen as Zachary came out of his room. Dressed in a blue tracksuit and sneakers, Zachary looked like he was going for a run. ¡°It¡¯s a little chilly today. It¡¯s likely to rain too. Are you going out for a run? Don¡¯t forget to bring along an umbre, so you don¡¯t get soaked.¡± Seeing that Serenity was carrying her purse that contained her phone and keys, he asked, ¡°Are you going to the market?¡± ¡°Our fridge is running low on inventory. I¡¯m going to get groceries from the market. Do you want toe along? You can run to the market and back.¡± Considering the distance between Brynfield and the market, Zachary shook his head. ¡°I¡¯m just going to jog around the neighborhood. You can get groceries from the nearby supermarket. There¡¯s no need to go to the market.¡± Serenity responded to Zachary while making her way out, ¡°The supermarket prices are more expensive than in the market. We can¡¯t just spend extravagantly. We must be budget conscious.¡± Zachary had no words as he stared at her back. ¡°The allowance I gave you should be enough for us to livefortably. Don¡¯t be too frugal. You got to treat yourself. What¡¯s the point of earning money? It¡¯s so we can eat better, have better clothes, and live life without reservation.¡± Serenity stopped outside the door and waited for Zachary toe out before closing and locking the front door. She then replied, ¡°Be grateful that you married a wife who is budget conscious and careful not to splurge. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Do you think you can afford me if I waste a few hundred thousand dors on a bag?¡± Patting Zachary on the chest, she added. ¡°Consider yourself lucky, pal. You got a good thing going on.¡± Zachary was speechless. Chapter 175 Chapter 175 Chapter 175 The couple walked down the stairs together. Zachary went for his morning run while Serenity rode her e¨Cbike to the market. She was mounting the bike when Zachary reminded her, ¡°Get extra groceries to bring to your shop. You can cook your lunch. You should stop ordering takeout.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll have the Wiltspoon Hotel deliver meals to you every day if I catch you with another takeout.¡± Serenity turned her head to shoot him an angry look. ¡°Squanderer!¡± Zachary made a wry face. Not too far away, the bodyguard, who pretended to pass by, nearly snickered after overhearing Serenity. Refusing to spend another minute with the squanderer, Serenity rode her bike away. ¡°The girl doesn¡¯t know what¡¯s good for her!¡± Zachary waited until she was long gone before making that snidement. Serenity looked around the marketce and bought a lot of fresh vegetables and longsting melons to stuff the fridge. The potatoes, carrots, and onions were ced in a ventted bag on the floor. After a change of clothes from his morning run, Zachary emerged and looked at her haul. He was twitching by the corner of his ¡± Still, he said nothing. Serenity got straight to making the pasta dish. She bought some pork belly too. First, she got the ingredients ready by slicing the pork and dicing the tomatoes. She proceeded to stir the tomatoes on the stove until pureed. Zachary watched from the kitchen door before moving to the balcony. He sat on the swing and admired the mini garden while swaying with the breeze. It was rather rxing. No wonder Serenity would take the time to sit here every day. Ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. It was an iing call from Josh. Zachary took the call but kept his voice down in case his wife in the kitchen might hear him. ¡°Boss, Serenity¡¯s ridiculous rtives found a mediator. They¡¯re going to try and resolve issues with her.¡± Many matters concerning the CEO¡¯s wife would pass through Josh¡¯s hands. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. He would be the first to know of any update. With his eyes turning cold and dark, he asked callously, ¡°Haven¡¯t you shut them down?¡± ¡°No. It¡¯s going easy on them if we squash them right away. We should fool around with him a little so they lose everything they own bit by bit. Now that¡¯s what I call revenge. ¡°Since they have their backs against the wall whether in their work or business, they¡¯re more anxious than the missus. They had looked for Serenity to resolve their differences, but the missus refused. They have now turned to a mediator from some TV program for help.¡± Zachary replied indifferently, ¡°I don¡¯t care whatever TV program it is. Just deal with them. Don¡¯t let those people harass my wife.¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°You seem angry. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll get it done and put the word out that the TV producers can expect their shows to be canceled if any of their mediators bothers the missus. These mediators make crassments without knowing the full story. They sure have the nerve to talk people into forgiving and forgetting when they had never experienced the hardships themselves.¡± For all the things the Hunts had done to Serenity and Liberty, anybody with a bit of decency would not persuade Serenity to settle with the Hunts. It was easy for the mediators to say anything when it was not their heads on the chopping block. ¡°Boss, did the missus give you any packed breakfast today? Can you ask her to pack extras? I want to sample her cooking.¡± ¡°Get lost!¡± Zachary abruptly ended the call. Josh remarked, ¡°Tch, tch. Would k at that! Jealousy isn¡¯t a nice color on him.¡± Chapter 176 Chapter 176 Chapter 176 Now things were starting to get interesting Serenity had no idea that her man nipped another one of her headaches in the bud in those mere minutes. After the spaghetti was cooked to al dente, Serenity ted it together with the tomato sauce base. She also sprinkled diced pork belly and basil on top, but only a dash of chili powder on her te. It was only a quick sprinkle as Serenity was worried it might be too spicy than she could take. Statistics showed that Wiltspoonians were not fond of the extra pow in their meals. ¡°Mr.York, breakfast¡¯s ready.¡± Serenity carried her te out of the kitchen while beckoning Zachary, who was on the swing. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. to the dinner table. Zachary was without a word, but he left the balcony. Seeing that his breakfast was not served on the dining table, he quietly went into the kitchen. and brought out his share. ¡°You can add as much chili powder as you like. My sister loves hot spices, so she put together a bunch of hot vors to make her own.¡± The sisters had rather different palettes despite sharing the same mother. Serenity would usually add a pinch of chili powder to her pasta dish, but most of the time, she would hold off the hot spices. Her sister loved a lot of heat in her food. She would pour copious amounts of chili powder into her cooking whether itplemented the cuisine or not Liberty had a few potted nts on her balcony, but instead of flowers, she opted for peppers around the world that could adapt to Wiltspoon¡¯s seasons. ¡°I don¡¯t like anything greasy or Serenity lifted her chin and smu. Zachary ¡°Oh, you can¡¯t eat greasy and spicy food, huh? Maybe I should add fats and chili powder in the food for you to try Zachary was speechless. He let slip his teeny weeny weaknesses. Serenity found Zachary a bore as thetter solemnly ate the food with a straight face She could lose her appetite by having meals with him. Pulling out her phone, Serenity scrolled on the news while enjoying her breakfast Serenity was then able to finish her breakfast quickly and licked her te clean. She put away her phone and got up to bring her dirty dish to the kitchen. As she got on her feet, she noticed the spaghetti and the sauce were polished off the man¡¯s te. However, the pork belly bits and basil were piled up in a corner of the te. Given that Zachary worked a lot, Serenity added more pork to his te lest he was starving To her surprise, he did not even touch it! He skipped on the basil too ¡°Zachary,¡± Serenity mmed the table to get his attention. Her eyes shifted to his te when Zachary looked at her. She asked, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you eat the pork?¡± Zachary did not make a sound. The heir of the Yorks never ate more than a handful of pork belly in his lifetime! The saturated fats and grease were more than he could take ¡°I can overlook the basil because not many are keen on the taste, but don¡¯t waste the meat The price of pork has gone up.¡± Still keeping to himself, Zachary got up and walked off with his te in hand. With Zachary walking away from the conversation, Serenity whined, ¡°I would have eaten the meat myself had I known. He has no stomach for what I do for him. Zachary threw his leftovers into the bin and washed his dish before leaving the kitchen Seeing that his wife was still at the dinner table, he took out his wallet and retrieved a hundred dor bill. He approached Serenity and handed the money to her ¡°What¡¯s this for?¡± ¡°I wasted the food you bought, so I¡¯m paying you back for it Quit grumbling like an old granny. I can¡¯t get used to high fat content, so you don¡¯t put it on my te next time It was true that he had no stomach for what she did for him Chapter 177 Chapter 177 Chapter 177 Serenity pushed Zachary¡¯s money away. ¡°I didn¡¯t know that you don¡¯t eat food that¡¯s high in saturated fat, but I won¡¯t put it on your te next time. Put away your money. Can you stop shing your cash? Do you think you¡¯re made of money?¡± Zachary should dish out several million in cash by the way he was unting his money. She could then count the money and admit that he was made of money. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you say anything when I was cooking the pork? What¡¯s the point of having a mouth? Well, that¡¯s a waste of one of your five senses if you don¡¯t know how to speak up¡­¡± A wad of notes was ced on her empty te. Serenity¡¯s rambling came to a screeching halt. Without giving her a chance to return the money, Zachary turned on his heel and left. Serenity took a nce at the money on the te and moved the gaze to the man on the run. The man already had one foot out the door by then. ¡°Zachary, do I look like a beggar to you?¡± The door mming shut was his response. Now that the door was closed, Zachary could no longer hide the smile on his face. Back in the house, Serenity picked up the stack of bills on her te while mumbling, ¡°You must think you¡¯re all that because you¡¯re loaded? You gave me the money. I didn¡¯t ask for it myself. You can only buy silence ¡®e time. Let¡¯s see how long you can keep up with the act.¡± ne up to a little over two thousand bucks. Serenity counted the money, and ¡°Tch. Over two thousand bucks. I dare you to throw me a sack of cash!¡± Serenity chewed Zachary out. Zachary¡¯s hush money was rather insulting. Of course, she was happy to ept it if he enjoyed paying her in exchange for her silence. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Putting the money in her pocket, Serenity went into the kitchen to wash the dish and tidied up the countertop. She packed some groceries separately to bring to the shop for lunch before setting off to work. She had just left the house when she received a call from her sister. ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity would always take her sister¡¯s call right away in case something terrible might have happened to Liberty. ¡°Seren, are you at work yet?¡± ¡°I just left the house. I¡¯m walking down the stairs. What¡¯s up?¡± ¡°I fed Sonny. Can youe over to take Sonny to your shop? I¡¯m going to start looking for a job today.¡± The bruises on Liberty¡¯s face had gone down. After a talk with her sister, Liberty decided to find a job today and get on a healthy diet too. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll be right over. Pack Sonny¡¯s bag with toys, form, and a few pants.¡± Sonny was only two years old and could barely speak. He was not potty trained yet and often peed his pants, so a few extra pairs of pants was needed. ¡°I got everything ready.¡± ¡°It won¡¯t take me long.¡± Since Serenity was bringing along her nephew, she drove her four-wheeled vehicle to work. She needed to get a child car seat installed on the backseat for Sonny¡¯s safety. Serenity turned back to her house to grab the car keys. After much thought, she went into the kitchen and took some vegetables out of the fridge. She could prepare soft-cooked vegetables for Sonnyter at the shop. Sonny could have his form milk before his nap. The little man must have his bottle before sleep. Otherwise, he would stay awake and fuss. He was not ready to wean off the bottle. It did not take Serenity long to arrive at her sister¡¯s neighborhoo Chapter 178 Chapter 178 Chapter 178 Liberty was downstairs waiting for her sister. She carried her son while a diaper bag and a rucksack hung off each arm. Liberty looked around, failing to notice a new car driving by. More urately, she was not on the lookout for a four¨Cwheeled vehicle as her sister often rode an e¨C bike. Serenity pulled up in front of her sister and rolled down the window. ¡°Liberty.¡± Taken aback at first, Liberty ensued with a smile. ¡°I thought you were riding your bike today.¡± She knew that her brother¨Cinw bought her sister a car, but Serenity rarely used it. This was the first time Serenity drove here with the new car. Serenity got out of the car and grabbed the diaper bag from Liberty. She opened the door to the back seat and put the diaper bag in. She asked, ¡°Is everything in there, Liberty? The form is the most important thing.¡± ¡°It¡¯s all there.¡± Liberty handed her son over to her sister. With Serenity carrying Sonny, Liberty drew close to kiss her son on the cheek and urged him, ¡°Be a good boy to your Aunt Ser, Sonny. Mommy will be back soon.¡± 11 Sonny was close to his aunt, so he did not make a fuss when he was handed to his aunt. Sonny even waved his mother goodbye. Liberty felt a little sad. Her son was only two. She had int. to enroll him in a kindergarten before rebuilding her career. Yet, reality forced her to look for a job ahead of her ns. ¡°Liberty, is my brother¨Cinw back yet?¡± It had been days since the fight between the couple. Liberty replied dejectedly, ¡°No. He sent me a text message to return the money for living expenses since he had not been eating at home. He wants me to refund his portion of the money.¡± She was cut to the quick by every little thing Hank did. It gave Liberty nothing but agony. She was so blind to love such a man, marry him, and bear his child. The man repaid her with disgust and abuse less than three years into the marriage. ¡°Liberty, did you refund the money to him?¡± After a brief silence, Liberty replied, ¡°I gave back the money. Since he¡¯s so strict on going halves, I won¡¯t take what¡¯s not mine.¡± Serenity pursed her lips, keeping her thoughts about her brother-inw to herself. It was what it was. She asked with concern, ¡°Do you have enough money, Liberty?¡± Fishing out the two thousand bucks of hush money from Zachary, Serenity slipped it onto her sister¡¯s palm. ¡°Take this. Just tell me when you don¡¯t have enough. Don¡¯t feel burdened about it. Just think of it as a loan.¡± Liberty returned the money to her sister. ¡°I have money. I invested some of the money you¡¯ve given me in the past.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Although it¡¯s not much, every little bit counts. The money shouldst me for a while until I find a job.¡± She was grateful that Serenity advised her to keep half the money for emergencies back when thetter was providing her with living expenses. Otherwise, Liberty would be feeling the pinch now that her husband cut her off financially. Since Liberty did not want the money, Serenity put it back inside her pocket and gave Liberty words of encouragement. With Liberty hurrying them along, Serenity took her nephew and said, ¡°Come to the shop for lunchter. I brought groceries from home to cook in the shop.¡± Zachary banned her from ordering takeout and requested that she cooked her own meals. He would have meals delivered from the Wiltspoon Hotel if Serenity skipped on homemade meals. The Wiltspoon Hotel was a seven¨Cstar hotel with a te of ordinary greens pricing higher than a lunch set in a fast¨Cfood restaurant. Zachary would order a lot from the menu if he were to have them delivered to her shop. God knew how much that would cost. The man spent all his money without looking at the price tag. He should be more careful with his money. Squanderer! Money aside, Zachary¡¯s actions did make Serenity feel warm and cozy inside. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll grab a quick bite at a restaurant if I¡¯m far away. I¡¯ll have lunch at your shop if I¡¯m nearby though.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Serenity gave a few word ice before driving away with her nephew. Chapter 179 Chapter 179 Chapter 179 Serenity drove to the shop and saw a familiar car parked out the front. It was Shawn. Shawn came by to deliver food to his cousin again. Instead of breakfast, he brought along some pastries made by his family¡¯s personal chef. His excuse was that the pastries were too much for the family to finish, so he came to share them with his cousin. Jasmine did not read too much into his excuse as she and Serenity would not say no to food. Plus, Jasmine knew that all the pastries at the Lowes were baked fresh every day. Since Shawn brought them over, Jasmine helped herself to quite a bit. Shawn was worried his cousin would finish the pastries before Serenity made it to the shop. Looking out the shop, Shawn asked, ¡°Jas, is Serenitying today?¡± ¡°She will but a littleter.¡± Jasmine answered, unconcerned. As Jasmine lived rather close to the shop, she usually set up the shop and took care of business in the morning. Serenity was in charge of watching the shop at night. ¡°There¡¯s a difference between a married and a single woman. Serenity would often help with the house chores, cooking, and groceries before her brother-inw nitpicked on her when she was living at her sister¡¯s ce. Not much has changed after she¡¯s married. She always keeps herself busy.¡± Jasmine peered at her cousin and said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about me finishing the pastries. I can eat, but I can¡¯t eat everything all at once. I¡¯ll save some for Serenity.¡± With Jasmine reading his mind, Shav ed in embarrassment and replied, ¡°Serenity loves pastries. My family¡¯s chef went to Beans and Cream to pick up a bit of their technique and experimented at home. I think the food tastes better than before.¡± ¡°The food at Beans and Cream is indeed delicious.¡± Jasmine had been there on a blind date. Although the date was not a sess, Jasmine enjoyed a good meal because the pastries were absolutely tasty. Hearing a car pulling up, Jasmine said to her cousin, ¡°Can you see who¡¯s there?¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Shawn caught Serenity getting out of the car when he walked out. He said with a smile,¡¯ When did you get a car, Serenity?¡± ¡°I ¡°It was bought a while ago, but I haven¡¯t been driving. My sister is off to look for a job today, so she asked me to care for Sonny. I thought it would be safe for Sonny if I took the car instead of the bike. ¡°Aren¡¯t you working today, Shawn?¡± ¡°Yeah, I am. I dropped by to deliver some pastries the chef baked. You girls can have a little taste. I¡¯m heading off to the office soon. Serenity, about tomorrow¡¯s lunch¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m not going to back out from buying you lunch. Be there or be square.¡± Tomorrow was Saturday. She promised to treat Shawn to lunch on Saturday as a thank-you for driving her home and getting her e-bike fixed. Shawn replied with a grin, ¡°I wasn¡¯t worried that you¡¯d go back on your promise. I was concerned you might be too busy and want to take a rain check, that¡¯s all.¡± ¡°Nah.¡± Serenity was grabbing the diaper bag when Shawn came up to help her with it. ¡°Thanks.¡± After expressing her gratitude, Serenity reached into the backseat to carry her nephew out. Sheplimented the little man. ¡°You¡¯re such a good boy, Sonny. You didn¡¯t make a fuss or cry. Let me give you a kiss.¡± She then gave her nephew a smooch on the cheek. Shawn was envious, wondering when he would ever get a kiss from Serenity too. ¡°Sonny, this is Shawn.¡± Serenity taught her nephew Shawn¡¯s name. ¡°Hello, Shan.¡± Sonny greeted Shawn with his cutesy voice. Staring at the innocent, adorable, and polite kid, Shawn stroked Sonny¡¯s head with a smile. ¡± Hello, Sonny.¡± Chapter 179 Serenity drove to the shop and saw a familiar car parked out the front. It was Shawn. Shawn came by to deliver food to his cousin again. Instead of breakfast, he brought along some pastries made by his family¡¯s personal chef. His excuse was that the pastries were too much for the family to finish, so he came to share them with his cousin. Jasmine did not read too much into his excuse as she and Serenity would not say no to food. Plus, Jasmine knew that all the pastries at the Lowes were baked fresh every day. Since Shawn brought them over, Jasmine helped herself to quite a bit. Shawn was worried his cousin would finish the pastries before Serenity made it to the shop. Looking out the shop, Shawn asked, ¡°Jas, is Serenitying today?¡± ¡°She will but a littleter.¡± Jasmine answered, unconcerned. As Jasmine lived rather close to the shop, she usually set up the shop and took care of business in the morning. Serenity was in charge of wa the shop at night. ¡°There¡¯s a difference between a married and a single woman. Serenity would often help with the house chores, cooking, and groceries before her brother-inw nitpicked on her when she was living at her sister¡¯s ce. Not much has changed after she¡¯s married. She always keeps herself busy.¡± Jasmine peered at her cousin and said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about me finishing the pastries. I can eat, but I can¡¯t eat everything all at once. I¡¯ll save some for Serenity.¡± With Jasmine reading his mind, Shawn blushed in embarrassment and replied, ¡°Serenity loves pastries. My family¡¯s chef went to Beans and Cream to pick up a bit of their technique and experimented at home. I think the food tastes better than before.¡± ¡°The food at Beans and Cream is indeed delicious.¡± Jasmine had been there on a blind date. Although the date was not a sess, Jasmine enjoyed a good meal because the pastries were absolutely tasty. Hearing a car pulling up, Jasmine said to her cousin, ¡°Can you see who¡¯s there?¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Shawn caught Serenity getting out of the car when he walked out. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. He said with a smile, When did you get a car, Serenity?¡± ¡°It was bought a while ago, but I haven¡¯t been driving. My sister is off to look for a job today, so she asked me to care for Sonny. I thought it would be safe for Sonny if I took the car instead of the bike. ¡°Aren¡¯t you working today, Shawn?¡± ¡°Yeah, I ain I dropped by to deliver some pastries the chef baked. You girls can have a little taste I¡¯m heading off to the office soon Serenity, about tomorrow¡¯s lunch¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m not going to back out from buying you lunch. Be there or be square.¡± Tomorrow was Saturday She promised to treat Shawn to lunch on Saturday as a thank-you for driving her home and getting her e-bike fixed. Shawn replied with a grin, ¡°I wasn¡¯t worried that you¡¯d go back on your promise. I was concerned you might be too busy and want to take a rain check, that¡¯s all.¡± ¡°Nah.¡± Serenity was grabbing the diaper bag when Shawn came up to help her with it. ¡°Thanks.¡± After expressing her gratitude, Serenity reached into the backseat to carry her nephew out. Sheplimented the little man. ¡°You¡¯re such a good boy, Sonny. You didn¡¯t make a fuss or cry. Let me give you a kiss.¡± She then gave her nephew a smooch on the cheek. Shawn was envious, wondering when he would ever get a kiss from Serenity too. ¡°Sonny, this is Shawn.¡± Serenity taught her nephew S. ¡°Hello, Shan.¡± Sonny greeted Shawn with his cutesy voice. Staring at the innocent, adorable, and polite kid, Shawn stroked Sonny¡¯s head with a smile. ¡± Hello, Sonny.¡± Chapter 180 Chapter 180 Chapter 180 Carrying her nephew, Serenity walked alongside Shawn into the shop. ¡°Oh, Sonny¡¯s here. Come, Sonny. Give me a hug.¡± Jasmine got up and took Sonny from Serenity¡¯s arm. She sat down and asked Sonny, ¡°Do you want some pastries?¡± Sonny looked at his aunt. ¡°Give him a piece. Don¡¯t let him have too much or he won¡¯t eat his lunch.¡± Serenity took the diaper bag from Shawn and put it under the cash register. ¡°My sister decided to look for a job today. She asked me to look after Sonny. She¡¯lle here in the afternoon.¡± Jasmine gave Sonny a piece of pastry. Instead of epting it, Sonny opened his palms and said, ¡°Dirty.¡± Jasmine put down the food and carried him to the kitchte to wash his hands. She believed Liberty had raised Sonny well. As for the im about Sonny being naughty, that was just kids being kids. Parents would be worried that something must be wrong with their kid¡¯s head if the child simpl a corner all day like a bump on a log. Kids had it hard. They woid off for being naughty and questioned for their intelligence when they were not. Jasmine gave the pastry to Sonny aftering out of the kitchte. Sonny took the pastry and thanked her politely. ¡°Tank you, Jazz.¡± ¡°You¡¯re such a good boy.¡± Jasmine had thoughts about getting married and having an adorable child whenever she saw Sonny ¡°Liberty finally made the first step. I told Shawn about it, but Shawn is still learning the ropes. right now, so he can¡¯t get Liberty a job in finance. I asked my uncle, but he said they¡¯re not hiring at the moment.¡± Jasmine felt sorry as she brought it up. She could not help Liberty. Shawn felt bad too. Although he was to take over thepany, he was young and still trying to get the hang of things. Since Shawn was not ready to take the helm, he had no authority to assign people to vital departments and important positions. Shawn could be of help if it were a non managerial position Serenity replied, ¡°It¡¯s okay I believe my sister will find a job.¡± Zachary mentioned that hispany¡¯s finance department was not hiring either. ¡°Liberty used to work in finance She has the experience, so I¡¯m sure she won¡¯t have problems finding work¡± Jasmine was confident about Liberty returning to the workce. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. She trusted that Liberty would be taking her pick ofpanies instead of the other way round. Shawn opened her mouth, wanting to say something. However, he held his tongue in the end. ¡°Shawn, you should get to work. Uncle might deduct your wages if you¡¯rete every day.¡± Jasmine urged her cousin to leave. Shawn begrudgingly nced at his cousin. He had not spoken much to Serenity. ¡°Yeah, Shawn. Hurry to work. Don¡¯t arrivete and leave early. The whole organization is watching you,¡± Serenity remarked. The stress of being an heir could be overwhelming. The family could just drop anyone who failed to pick up the ck and handle the responsibility. Shawn was not the only heir left in the Lowe family. He had cousins waiting to take his ce. He might be up for the job, but Shawn would face obstacles to seed his father if he simply did as he pleased. With the girls rushing him to work, Shawn had to take his leave. Chapter 181 Chapter 181 Chapter 181 With Shawn gone, Jasmine expressed her concern. ¡°Seren, did your sister have another argument with your brother¨Cinw?¡± While caressing her nephew¡¯s head, Serenity replied, ¡°Hank is still at his parents¡® home He told my sister to return his portion of the living expenses because he wasn¡¯t eating at home He wants his cut back.¡± Jasmine responded after a brief pause, ¡°He¡¯s not much of a keeper, isn¡¯t he?¡± Serenity fell silent for a moment before answering, ¡°My sister needs to find stability before she can think about the future.¡± Jasmine was without a word. ¡°How was Mrs.Dawson¡¯s party? Did you have chemistry with her son?¡± ¡°My head is still aching.¡± Serenity blinked her eyes and burst outughing. ¡°Don¡¯t tell me you faked being drunk at the party?¡± It was all about poise and grace within the higher society. Jasmine could forget marrying ¡°Well, I didn¡¯t get drunk or go crazy, but I pretended to be intoxicated after consuming lots of wine. Iy on the floor and pretended to sleep. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. My aunt frantically dragged me out of there. I think my aunt won¡¯t ever take me to any events now! 11 Jasmine went all out to get her elders off her back about marrying a rich and powerful guy Although the wives of Wiltspoon¡¯s finest did not attend Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party, those of the rich social ss were there. Jasmine¡¯s fake drunkenness and sleep¨Con the floor stunt was aplete faux pas. ie threw a drunken fit at Mrs.Dawson¡¯s birthday party. In a circle where gossip spread like wildfire, it did not take long for the wholemunity to find out. These wives, who were hung up about status, looked down on Jasmine. There went Mrs.Lowe and Mrs.Sox¡¯s ns to marry Jasmine up. The Soxes were locals of Wiltspoon and made their money during the property boom. Since Jasmine¡¯s parents took over the family business, their assets had doubled, if not tripled. Nevertheless, in the eyes of the rich and powerful, the Soxes were nouveau riches who only struck a gold mine by luck due to the property boom. Mrs.Lowe was able to marry into the Lowes due to her prowess and determination to make it through. She also bore a son, which secured her position as the woman of the house. However, not every woman in the Sox family could be as lucky as Mrs.Lowe. Judging by Mr.Lowe¡¯s treatment toward Mrs.Lowe, Mrs.Lowe sure wore the pants in the marriage. Serenity said in disbelief, ¡°You sure risked it all.¡± ¡°Desperate times call for desperate measures.¡± It was never Jasmine¡¯s intention to marry someone rich and powerful. Instead of looking for love, she was waiting for love toe to her. Her family did not need to rush her into marriage as she would marry when Mr.Right came along. She could go on hundreds of dates but would not find chemistry with anyone if the time had note. ¡°I think my mom and aunt will get off my back for a while.¡± ¡°Your aunt probably wants to dissociate herself from you and pretend she doesn¡¯t know you,¡± Serenity uttered with a grin. shing back to when silence befell the room, and all eyes were on Jasmine when she pretended to be drunk andy on the ground. Her aunt frantically picked her up and dragged her out of the scene. Jasmine stole a nce at her aunt¡¯s face. Her face bore so many emotions. She burst outughing. ¡°Hahaha!¡± his aunt and Jasmine were giggling. Sonny joined in on theughter This made the girlsugh even harder. Guffaws filled the air. Chapter 182 Chapter 182 The Imitation ¡°We are talking about Vincent Geoffrey, the renowned jade carving master. You must be thinking of someone else,¡± Bill butted in and red at Maria. He didn¡®t want to believe that someone like Maria would actually know such a famous figure. In his opinion, Maria was just bluffing. Before teaching her a lesson, he did find it necessary to introduce the background of the master whose masterpiece she stole. ¡°Vincent Geoffrey is a famous artist worldwide. When ites to the jade carving, he is second to none. Six months ago, he donated four small jade carvings of identical design at a charity auction. And yes, Vivian¡®s Jadee is one of them.¡± Then, Bill picked up a magnifying ss on the tea table and continued, ¡°If you look closely at its bottom side, there should be a micro¨Ccarved serial number ¡®Y0088¡®¡­ What?¡± Bill almost jumped in surprise when he saw what was carved on it. The four jade carvings that Vincent himself donated for the auction had the following serial numbers engraved in them: Y0006, Y0008, Y0066, and Y0088. In order not to damage the overall beauty of the sophisticated jade carvings, these numbers were carefully engraved at the bottom using a piece of high¨Cend micro¨Ccarving equipment. It was so small that it could only be seen with the use of a magnifying ss. However, the moment Bill subjected Maria¡®s jade piece under the magnifying ss, the serial number that appeared was different from what Jadee originally had. In fact, it was different from every jade piece that Vincent had donated in the auction. This jade pendant wasbeled Y0001. After seeing this, the entire Jenkins family was extremely dumbfounded. If the serial number was wrong, it only meant one thing. ¡°What the hell¡­ Y0001? What¡®s going on?¡± Vivian blurted out. This turn of events wasn¡®t funny at all. ¡°Is there such a number? Is this even Vincent¡®s work?¡± Y0001. It meant that this was the first work of the master carver in a series of simrly designed outputs. Moreover, it also meant that this was the most valuable among the others. Once the serial number was carved on its surface, it could no longer be changed. Therefore, this simply meant that Maria¡®s pendant was not the one that Vivian had lost. ¡°Are you finished checking it? If yes, then please give it back to me,¡± Maria said the moment she noticed that they had already realized their blunder. Bill was a reasonable adult who could think more clearly than Vivian. Although this was not Jadee they were looking for, it was probably something much more precious. He couldn¡®t help but ask, ¡°Then¡­ Where did you get this?¡± The jade pendant Maria had was of the same design as Vincent¡¯s work. Furthermore, it was numbered ¡°1¡±. Because of this information, Bill found it more confusing. Maria was a mere ordinary girl from a small, poor town. How could she get her hands on such a precious thing? ¡°Back when I was working at the digital store, I was able to save some money from my sry, especially when the business was doing good.¡± Then, she paused for a bit to prepare them for something they might not believe. ¡°I bought it with my own money.¡± To be precise, she only bought the materials. But the entire craftsmanship was hers. Of course, Maria didn¡®t find it wise to talk to Bill about it in detail. After all, she couldn¡®t trust them ¡°You bought it? How could you have afforded it?¡± It was obvious that Bill was in utter disbelief. This girl had just graduated from high school. There was no way she could have made enough money from part¨Ctime jobs to afford such a precious jade pendant All of a sudden, Bill thought of something. He wasn¡®t sure if his idea would lead to somewhere, but there was only one way to find out. He held up the jade pendant in his hand and tried scrutinizing it. As he looked closely, the only thought that kept running in his mind was the possibility that this pendant was just an imitation made out of cheap materials. The more he pondered this theory, the more he believed it. If Maria could afford a piece of jewelry, it would most likely be just an imitation of the original work. It wasn¡®t an outrageous idea. After all, many had already tried to copy Vincent¡®s pieces. On that note, Bill supposed that this pendant was just one of those cheap replicas that could be bought at a roadside stall. The truth was, he was no jade expert. His knowledge of jades was actually so insufficient that he wouldn¡®t even be able to tell a broken jade from a broken ss. ¡°Fine. It seems that this was all a misunderstanding.¡± Bill then wryly returned the pendant to Maria. The sudden change in her husband¡®s attitude put a frown on Julie¡®s face. She wanted to say something more but ended up keeping it to herself. She might not be too familiar with Vincent¡®s works, but she knew her husband well. Julie reckoned that Bill must have hastily concluded that Maria¡¯s pendant was just a piece of counterfeit jewelry that she got from a small workshop in the vige. Or perhaps, he thought that it was probably made of inferior raw materials. However,pared to Bill, Julie could at least tell that it really was made of fine jade. ¡°Dad! Are you really just gonna let this slide?!¡± They had wasted so much time all morning, yet they still couldn¡®t find Jadee. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Of course, Vivian still wasn¡®t appeased. Even if the pendant was a fake, she couldn¡®t let Maria off the hook so easily and be cleared of suspicion. Trying to think of another way to pin the me on Maria, Vivian thought of suggesting that they search the new girl¡®s room this time. Chapter 183 Chapter 183 ¡°Isn¡®t there any surveince camera in such a high¨Css vi?¡± Maria asked in an arrogant tone, as if mocking the father and daughter¡®s stupidity. . In her opinion, this was a matter that could be easily dealt with. They could either check the surveince video footage, or just call the police toe and handle it. Why did they waste time on questioning her? Having grown up in a small town, Maria knew all the other members of the Jenkins family there. Although Bill was the richest man among the Jenkins, he was obviously not the smartest one. Upon hearing Maria¡®s words, Bill¡®s eyes lit up in enlightenment. ¡°Yes! We have surveince cameras in our house!¡± Lily instantly became nervous. She took a few steps back quietly without anyone noticing, and then suddenly shouted, ¡°Look! What¡®s that under the sofa?¡± 1 As she spoke, she nudged the sofa aside a little bit so that everyone could see what was hidden underneath. ¡°Ah! My Jadee!¡± Vivian shouted excitedly and picked it up at once. Bill grabbed the magnifying ss to check the serial number on the bottom of the jade piece. ¡°Yes, the number is Y0088. It is Jadee!¡± Bill confirmed with a relieved smile. ¡°There¡®s no need to check the surveince video then. Vivian, you must have dropped it under the sofa by ident.¡± It was only upon hearing that they weren¡®t going to check the surveince video that Lily rxed again. As for Vivian, she waspletely distracted by the delight of finding her treasure again. She took out a wet tissue and carefully wiped off the dust on the jade piece. Now that Jadee had been found, everyone crowded around to look at it. In the process, they ignored Maria as if she had never existed. ¡°If there¡®s nothing else, I¡®ll go back to my room now,¡± Maria announced tly. Unsurprisingly, no one paid attention to her. Pursing her lips in annoyance, Maria turned around and went back to her room. After locking the door behind her, she took out her phone and texted an online friend who went by the name of V. ¡°Vincent, yellow card warning! Why did you giarize my jade carving design?¡± A reply arrived from Vincent only a few secondster. . ¡°I¡¯m just redoing my disciple¡¯s design as practice. How can you call that an act of giarism? Listen, I was recently invited to a charity auction, where they wanted me to showcase some new work. But how could i design something new on such short notice? That¡®s why I just used yours.¡± This Vincent was in fact the internationally well¨Cknown master, Vincent Geoffrey. Reading the so-called exnation of this jade carvings master, Maria didn¡®t buy it at all. ¡°Huh?¡± Although it was just one word, it was full of warning. Vincent hurriedly added, ¡°Anyway, I did it for charity. Don¡®t haggle over every ounce. A master is to his disciple what a father is to his daughter. I have merely borrowed your design. After I die, all the glory and wealth of the Geoffrey Jade Carving School will be yours.¡± If Vincent¡®s words ever leaked out to the public, it would cause a great uproar in the jade carving industry. It was well known that Vincent didn¡®t have any disciples. But now,mon knowledge seemed to be far from the truth. In fact, Vincent seemed to have already found a sessor and even prepared his will. If Maria inherited Vincent¡®s wealth, she would be one of the top 100 female billionaires in the country overnight. ¡°What disciple? Didn¡®t I refuse you for the ny¨Cninth timest month? I am not your disciple,¡± Maria corrected him calmly. ¡°I¡®ve given you advice on how to carve. How can you not take me as your master?¡± No one would believe that Vincent Geoffrey, an international master of jade carvings and a famous expert in the industry, was actually a big fan of various emojis during online chatting He sent three different angry emojis to protest Maria¡®s refusal to call herself his disciple. ¡°Advice? We were just discussing the matter, weren¡®t we?¡± Maria retorted. ¡°You were just an injured old man I picked up from a ditch in the mountains. At that time, I was kind enough to let you stay at my house and recuperate, but you didn¡®t leave even after your injury was healed, and overstayed your wee by more than half a year. Speaking of which, when are you going to pay me back all the medical and food expenses?¡± Vincent was a little embarrassed. ¡°It¡®s because you cook so well!¡± he protested. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Maria rolled her eyes. ¡°So you¡®re saying it¡®s actually my fault?¡± Chapter 184 Chapter 184 It wasn¡®t really a secret that Vincent liked to travel to various ces to look for inspiration. In fact, remote towns were his favorite among them. This is from N?velDrama.Org. One time, he happened to stumble upon a mountain near the town where Maria lived. Unfortunately, he got in an ident. He fell down and was injured in the process. Luckily for him, Maria was passing by, so she was able to save him. ¡°Ugh! I just can¡®t catch a break¡­¡± After being tantly rejected again, Vincent could only sigh deeply andin loudly. ¡°What¡®s wrong? Did something happen to you?¡± At this time, a guest was sighted in Vincent¡®s house, which was a rare asion. ¡°Let me guess¡­ You have been rejected again, haven¡®t you?¡± The young guest wore a yful smile and seemed to know Vincent very well. He was able to directly point out what was making him this gloomy. In low spirits, Vincent looked at his guest with a frustrated look. ¡°My dear disciple doesn¡®t want to ept me as her master. Do you know how sad that makes me feel?¡± The young guest, who was sitting in a wheelchair, shook his head lightly but remained silent. He actually wanted to say that she couldn¡®t be Vincent¡®s disciple if she was yet to ept him as her master. But of course, the young man didn¡®t want to rub more salt into his friend¡®s wounds. In fact, he would often hear Vincent talk about this person. But whenever he took the initiative to ask further about her, Vincent was always unwilling to reveal more information. Even her name remained unknown. Vincent continued, ¡°I am a lonely old man and she is an orphan. It¡®s the perfect setup for both of us. If she agrees to be my disciple, I can legally take her under my wing and bring her home. Then, I will let her cook for me every day, Ehem! I mean¡­ I will let her learn jade carvings from me every day.¡± The moment Vincent realized that his tongue slipped, his face turned bright red. He tried to correct himself, but his guest had already heard what he said loud and clear. In response, the young man chuckled, covering his mouth out of politeness. But it was such a funny incident that he couldn¡®t stop smiling. Vincent was so ashamed of his blunder. How could he suddenly blurt out his ulterior motive for trying to turn this girl into his disciple? ¡°Anthony, stopughing. You haven¡®t tasted the dishes she makes, so you don¡®t know how sensational her cooking is! Ha! I¡®m sure if you try it, you¡®ll fall for her. Oh, speaking of which¡­ Are you still single? How about I introduce you to my disciple? I swear you won¡®t regret it.¡± Hearing this, Anthony let out a bitter smile and politely declined, ¡°No, thanks. Grandpa has already arranged someone for me to marry.¡± Vincent was stunned, unable to believe what he just heard. ¡°What? But I heard that you and your grandfather had a falling out. He even deprived you of the right to be his heir. right? So, what¡®s this engagement still for?¡± Falling out. Anthony thought that it was a much better term. He simply smiled, not showing any sign of frustration or disappointment. Out of nowhere, Vincent asked in a serious tone, ¡°Anthony, do you believe in destiny? All my life, I was trying to find a qualified sessor. I almost gave up and thought that it was futile. But during the most unexpected situation, I met her! Can you believe that our encounter happened because I was in an ident on the mountain? I¡®m telling you! This is fate!¡± ¡°An ident on the mountain, huh?¡± Anthony repeatedly in a low voice, his brows slightly furrowed. ¡°Yes! If that¡®s not destiny, I don¡®t know what is!¡± After a few more minutes of conversation, Anthony deemed it was time to say goodbye. As he left, he took a jade Buddha statue with him. It was one of Vincent¡®s most famous works and actually the main purpose of his visit. Soon, Anthony returned to the Wilson family¡®s house in Sheffield. As soon as he entered the huge mansion, he ran into his uncle, Raymond Wilson, who was currently in charge of all the affairs of the Wilson family. Upon seeing Anthony sitting in his electric wheelchair, a hint of sarcasm and condescension shed across Raymond¡®s face. ¡°Oh, Anthony. You¡®re back already. Is that the birthday gift you¡®re going to give to your grandfather? What do you have ther¡ª¡± Raymond¡®s voice disappeared when he saw the jade Buddha statue. The smug smile on his face also vanished, and all that remained was utter surprise. ¡°Is that¡­ the famous Buddha statue made by Vincent himself? H¨Chow¡­ How¡®d you manage to obtain it?¡± However, Anthony didn¡®t seem to be in the mood for idle chitchat. ¡°Yes, it is. Now, please excuse me.¡± Right after answering the question, Anthony directly ended the conversation and left. Raymond was left there, watching his nephew¡®s receding figure while his eyes were filled with burning jealousy. ¡°Bah!¡± Raymond mocked in disdain. ¡°Dad haspletely given up on him, but he still doesn¡¯t want to give up. Does he think he can make everything alright again just by getting his hands on Vincent¡®s work? Dream on!¡± Although Raymond said this out loud, deep inside him, he was still a little worried. Currently, everyone in the Wilson family knew just how mad Michael was at his grandson, and Raymond was one of those who felt delighted by the situation. Michael wouldn¡¯t change his mind just because of a Buddha statue, would he? Raymond certainly hoped not. After all, with Anthony out of the picture, he had practically taken over the entire Wilson family as the new head. Of course, he didn¡®t want to lose the power he had just acquired just because Anthony was able to patch things up with Michael again. Chapter 185 Chapter 185 The Trap Anthony came into his grandfather¡¯s room with the Buddha statue. He ced the statue on a table, and then turned his wheelchair and stopped in front of the bed. The old man lying in bed instantly saw what Anthony brought in, and he looked at his grandson with loving eyes. ¡°I don¡¯t know if you¡¯ve noticed it, but Raymond is growing a little too big for his britches. Don¡¯t you think?¡± The moment Michael mentioned Raymond¡¯s name, he couldn¡¯t conceal his disgust. ¡°Well, how long are you going to let him boast around acting all mighty?¡± As Michael continued talking, Anthony gently poured a cup of water for his grandfather. ¡°He¡¯s only in charge of the family business by name. It¡¯s not like he can really do whatever he wants.¡± The business the Wilson family ran was divided into two major factions¡ªthe core business and the periphery business. On the surface, what most people saw was the periphery business. Although it seemed to unt the family¡¯s influence and resources, it actually had little value. However, the core business was the one that served as the center of actual power and wealth of the family. On top of that, it was highly ssified. It was too critical that people like Raymond weren¡¯t even qualified enough to know about its existence. ¡°Still, I can¡¯t help but feel sorry for you¡­¡± Michael said softly as he lowered his head. Some time ago, the Wilson family underwent drastic changes. It all began when Michael got injured and hospitalized, and Anthony became a cripple. For most people, what they knew was that this happened because of Anthony¡¯s poor judgment. He failed to foresee their enemies¡¯ n, making him and his grandfather fall victims to the trapid out for them. In the end, Michael was injured and he himself became disabled for the rest of his life. Then, in Michael¡¯s anger, he decided that Anthony wasn¡¯t worthy of bing the heir of the Wilson family anymore. This meant that he would have to select another heir from the Wilsons. Although this was supposed to be just a rumor, there was a pretty powerful piece of evidence pointing out its credibility. This was when Michael arranged Anthony¡¯s marriage to the daughter of a ¡°humble¡± family, The Jenkins might have a reputation that was much greater than average families in Sheffield, but their social status was still far downpared to the Wilson family. But no one knew that behind all these rumors, the one actually pulling the strings to spread them was none other than Anthony himself. ¡°Is it not time to draw the up?¡± Michael asked, hinting at the possibility of taking action. However, Anthony just shook his head and uttered, ¡°Don¡¯t be too worried about Raymond. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. He¡¯s just a clown who won¡¯t be able to do anything against me. There are still some people who are lurking in the dark. We have to sniff them out first. If they are going to y a waiting game, I can be patient.¡± Seeing the confidence in Anthony¡¯s eyes, Michael also felt assured. Most times, in wealthy families, the family members valued the benefits that they could obtain more than having a harmonious rtionship with everyone. In fact, in order to guarantee his inheritance right, Raymond contacted the Wilson family¡¯s rivals and colluded with them. They plotted to kill both Michael and Anthony, the master and the heir of the Wilson family at that time. He was so blinded by greed that he didn¡¯t care how unforgivable his action was. Because of this, Anthony decided to put on this show in order to reorganize the Wilson family. Of course, he and Michael were in on it together. ¡°I also heard that the Jenkins family adopted a country girl to rece their daughter to marry you. Is that true?¡± Michael let out a frown, thinking that Bill wasn¡¯t being grateful to them. Even though Bill tried his hardest to secretly manipte the situation in his favor, his movements wouldn¡¯t escape Michael¡¯s intelligencework. ¡°It¡¯s my fault that we cannot find out the true identity of the person who tipped us off¡­ But I didn¡¯t expect that Bill would pull off something like this. That man can be a wily fox.¡± ¡°It doesn¡¯t really matter.¡± Anthony waved his hand, his tone very indifferent. ¡°In fact, I think it¡¯s good that my bride is going to be a girl from a small town in the countryside. At least I¡¯d know for sure that she has a clean background.¡± It was true that with Raymond¡¯s help, the enemies of the Wilson family managed to ambush Michael. However, Anthony managed to save him at the most crucial moment. Moreover, the only reason why Anthony coulde and save Michael in the nick of time was that he had received a mysterious tip about their enemies¡¯ n. The Wilson family boasted a lot of resources and high-end technology, but they still couldn¡¯t locate the person who sent the information that saved Michael. The only thing they could confirm was that the information was sent from the small town in the countryside where the poor Jenkins families lived. Although the person was adamant about revealing their identity, Michael found out about Bill Jenkins through thorough investigations. It turned out that he was the only Jenkins from that town who now lived in Sheffield. Coincidentally. Bill had a daughter. After conducting a background check, they learned that Tiv¨ªan seemed to meet all the standards of an eligibledy. Therefore, on a whim, Michael made an arrangement to set up an engagement between Vivian and Anthony. However, Anthony was busy with other affairs at that time, so he didn¡¯t know that Michael was nning something like this. Nheless, he didn¡¯t object or say anything even after earning about the engagement. He simply began to spread the rumor that he was stripped of the right to be the heir of the Wilson family and that he ended up being permanently disabled because of the ambush. He actually thought that Bill would propose to cancel the engagement after hearing about che rumors. But it came as a surprise that because he didn¡¯t dare offend the Wilson family, ne actually adopted a new daughter to make the situation still favorable for him. ¡°Anyway¡­ Anthony, you know that arranging this engagement for you at that time was just an impulse of mine. If you want, we can always call it off¡­¡± Michael thought that as he grew older, his decision-making skills got poorer. Because of this engagement, he assumed that he made unnecessary trouble for Anthony. Now, he wanted to cancel the engagement. The only problem was that if the Wilson family took the initiative to propose its withdrawal, it would inevitably make them lose face. If they pushed through with it, they would have to properly apologize to Bill for the inconvenience they caused. However, it seemed that Anthony had a different idea in mind. He shook his head and advised, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. I¡¯ll handle it myself.¡± Chapter 186 Chapter 186 A Date After taking Maria to Sheffield, Bill began to arrange a date for her and Anthony Right now, it was the first priority on Bill¡®s agenda. He wouldn¡®t be able to rest easy until Anthony agreed to get engaged to Maria, It was the best possible result Bill could think of. If things worked out this way, then on one hand, Bill wouldn¡®t offend the Wilson family, and on the other hand, Vivian wouldn¡®t have to marry a cripple. It would be Maria who would have to marry that cripple who had already lost the right to inherit the Wilson family¡®s property. Bill had been observing Maria for a long time. Although she usually possessed a cold temperament with a fiery look in her eyes, there was no doubt that she was a beauty, It was fortunate that Maria never wore makeup and always dressed in in, simple clothes. Otherwise, she would easily outshine Vivian. All the clothes and jewelry Vivian wore were from famous brands, and her cosmetics and skincare products cost an arm and a leg. One look at her and anyone could tell that she was a high¨Cmaintenance woman. But even so, sometimes when Bill looked at Vivian, who put painstaking effort into every detail of her appearance, and then at Maria¡®s naturally stunning face, he felt that Vivian was way out of Maria¡¯s league. ¡°Maria, Anthony has agreed to meet you today. Go and prepare for it.¡± As soon as Bill secured an appointment with Anthony for Maria, he informed her about it. ¡°Prepare what?¡± Maria asked, raising an eyebrow in confusion. Taken aback, Bill scoffed. ¡°I mean that you should change into a beautiful dress and put on some makeup, of course. You can¡®t just go dressed like this to meet Anthony, can you?¡± ¡°Why not? I think it looks fine,¡± Maria said indifferently. She was wearing a simple white shirt with a pair of light blue jeans. Her long dark hair was tied into a ponytail, making her look neat, bright, and vibrant. However, Bill was obviously not satisfied. ¡°Do you know where you will be meeting Anthony Wilson? The Jade Hotel! It is the best luxury hotel in Sheffield. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. If you go there dressed like this, you will look worse than their hotel waiters.¡± Upon hearing this, a hint of interest finally appeared on Maria¡®s face. ¡°Did you just say¡­ Jade Hotel?¡± Bill red at her. What was wrong with this girl? She acted like she was very familiar with Jade Hotel. ¡°What?! Jade Hotel?¡± D Vivian, who happened to be nearby, cried out in surprise. ¡°It¡®s just a normal date. Why did you choose Jade Hotel for that? Besides, how did you even manage to book a table there?¡± Vivian had once starred as the lead actress in a web series. After thepletion of the shooting, the crew had tried to book the Jade Hotel for their celebration party, but failed. The reason Jade Hotel had given for their refusal was that they were already booked to full capacity and could not ept new reservations. However, Vivian hadter heard that only big¨Cname actors like Oscar winners could hold their celebration parties at the Jade Hotel. In the view of Jade Hotel, Vivian, who was just a new actress in a web series, was not even close to being qualified to be holding a party at their hotel. If they epted Vivian¡®s reservation, they would be lowering the standards of their own hotel, so they had politely refused the reservation instead. So naturally, Vivian couldn¡®t swallow the news from her father at all. She couldn¡®t even hold a celebration party for the sess of her web series at the Jade Hotel. How could Maria go there simply for a date with a cripple? ¡°Dad?!¡± Vivian prompted again, unable to contain her dissatisfaction with the situation. A bitter smile spread across Bill¡®s face. ¡°Vivian, you must have misunderstood. I didn¡®t book the Jade Hotel for this meeting; the Wilson family did. The Wilson family is a top VIP member of Jade Hotel, so they can patronize any of their branches all over the world at any time.¡± Vivian couldn¡®t believe her ears. This¡­. Was this the difference between an ordinary rich merchant and a family with centuries and centuries of generational wealth? 1 Vivian wasn¡®t allowed to book a reservation at the Jade Hotel even for a grand celebration party, but the Wilson family could go there as and when they liked. At the thought that Maria would be able to go to the Jade Hotel soon, jealousy bubbled up in Vivian¡¯s heart. But she shook her head andforted herself silently, ¡°Forget it! No matter how powerful the Wilson family is, I can¡®t marry a cripple. Besides, he¡®s not even the heir of the Wilson family anymore.¡± Thinking of this, Vivian felt much better. Chapter 187 Chapter 187 Chapter 187 ¡°Mr.York, I¡¯m outside your office. Are you on your lunch break yet? I¡¯m here to take you to my shop for lunch. Surprise!¡± Zachary was lost for words. Sure, it was a surprise, but not the good kind. Thank goodness he was good at stayingposed because that was quite a scare. ¡°Mr. York?¡± Serenity said as she did not get a response from the man. Tugging on his tie, Zachary replied in a husky voice, ¡°I¡¯m on my break but the client hasn¡¯t left. We¡¯re still ironing out the business details with the client, so it¡¯ll probably take a while. Why don¡¯t you go ahead, and I¡¯ll meet you at your shop for lunch?¡± ¡°How long more do you need? I didn¡¯t drive. I took a cab. It¡¯s okay. I¡¯ll wait for you outside your office building. We can go back together when you¡¯re done with your work¡± Zachary lifted his arm to look at his watch before responding, ¡°There¡¯s a dessert shop right across the office. Wait for me there. I¡¯ll see you in a bit.¡± Serenity turned her head and saw the dessert shop. Without a second thought, she took Zachary¡¯s suggestion Once Serenity hung up the call, 7 u nconsciously sighed in relief. He was afraid she might barge in ..-.- and that would give his game away¡­ Since Serenity came for him, Zachary went to the VIP reception and quickly closed the deal with the client He then arranged for Josh and the few senior executives to take the client to have a meal at the Wiltspoon Hotel ¡°Aren¡¯t youing along, Mr York?¡± the client asked. ¡°Something came up, so I can¡¯t have lunch with you, Mr. Johnson. We¡¯ll have it some other time¡± The important client today was none other than Remy Johnson, a member of the wealthiest family in Annenburg FC & Co had subsidiaries in Wiltspoon but with FC & Co.¡¯s Wiltspoon branch being sensible enough not to undercut the local tycoon, they had no reason to cross paths with York Corporation This time, FC & Co.¡¯s Wiltspoon branch undertook a huge project and was looking for a potential partnership with either York Corporation or Stone Group Both York Corporation and Stone Group were interested in doing business with Remy After a discussion with the head of the Johnson household, Remy was leaning toward working with York Corporation That was the start of a business rtionship between bothThis is from N?velDrama.Org. giants. Remy tactfully ended the conversation Josh ushered Reiny toe along Remy¡¯s bodyguards were waiting outside kemny often traveled with his security detail whenever he was out and about. It was said that out of his ten siblings, Remy could not fight to save his life. Hence, he was surrounded by bodyguards when in public. Zachary personally walked Remy and the entourage to the elevator. Once the group was in the elevator, Zachary returned to his office and took out a pair of binocrs to look down from the window. With Remy and the rest cruising in a car out of York Corporation, he turned around He whipped out his phone to call his bodyguards to wait for him on the first floor of the office building A few minutester, Zachary went down to the first floor. ¡°Sir.¡± ¡°Go on and have your lunch. No need to follow me. Just give me the keys to the MPV.¡± Zachary said as he walked. A bodyguard handed the keys of the MPV over to Zachary, The bodyguards followed behind Zachary when thetter waved them off. It was a signal to stop following Zachary Since Mr Zachary was using the N that case, they should not tag, al it could only mean that he would be with the missus. Chapter 188 Chapter 188 Chapter 188 While waiting for Zachary at the dessert shop, Serenity did not want to sit in the establishment without getting anything, so she ordered two milkshakes to go. Since she was sitting near the entrance, Serenity was able to spot Zachary when he drove out of the office building. Carrying her inilkshakes, she walked out of the shop. With a smile across her beautiful face, Serenity waved at Zachary. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary drove over and pulled up in front of her. Serenity took a few steps forward and opened the door to the passenger seat. She got into the car and put on her seatbelt before Zachary restarted the engine. ¡°Why are you wearing a ck mask?¡± Serenity asked in passing. Without a word, Zachary removed the mask He did not want anyone to recognize him as he drove out of his office building. Even though not many had seen hun in person before, it was best Zachary practiced caution. Instead of dwelling on Zachary¡¯s refusal to answer, Serenity asked, ¡°Do you want a milkshake? I bought you a cup. I¡¯ll have mine now, and I¡¯ll take over the wheel when I finish it. You can then have your drink. ¡± ¡°No, thank you. ¡± Zachary never had milkshakes before. ¡°I¡¯ll give it to Jasmine then. Jasmine likes milkshakes. She loves to pair milkshakes with sweet treats for tea. ¡± ¡°I guess girls prefer to have milkshakes. I rarely have it. I don¡¯t like it that much either. ¡± Sereillty took a sip and said, ¡°I seldom drink milkshakes too. It¡¯s not exactly the healthiest thing. ¡± She would always order juice whenever Jasmine ced a delivery order for milkshakes. ¡°What made youe all the way here to pick me up today?¡± Zachary asked in a low voice ¡°You could¡¯ve called ine before you canne. What if I wasn¡¯t in the office? You would¡¯vee all this way for nothing. ¡± He just happened to be in the office today, Usually, Zachary would not be around at this hour ¡°Do you always talk business when it¡¯s time to eat?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± Zachary added, ¡°Many deals are closed during lunch and dinner appointments. ¡± Serenity said, ¡°Oh I¡¯ll call you in advance next time. I just wanted to give you a surprise. I guess I gave you more of a scare than a pleasant surprise. ¡°My sister¡¯s out looldng for a job and will join us for lunch at the shop, so I made extra. You¡¯ve breri yerierous and caring toward me I should repay you, so I came over to pick you up for lunch togriher¡± After a brief silence, Zachary uttered, ¡°Serenity, we signed an agreement, but you don¡¯t have to be hung up about the divorce once the time is up. We can get along like other ordinary couples. No need to feel like you owe me for every single thing. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s all about the give-and-take between husband and wife,¡± Serenity spoke matter-of factly Zachary choked, at a loss for words, because she had a point. ¡°If you don¡¯t like me to pick you up and have meals together, I won¡¯te again. ¡± Serenity thought that he disapproved of hering to his workce. She still remembered what he told her when they just got their marriage license. They were to keep their marriage a secret. Serenity must not disclose their status to anybody without his consent. Zachary fell silent once more. He had no idea what to say. For Serenity to pick him up at work, it meant that she was starting to give him care and attention. W However, they were supposed to keep their marriage under wraps. He did not want to spin a web of lies to cover his back every time she came. Serenity took Zachary¡¯s silence admission to her question. Drinking thest of the milkshake, she told herself to never pick him up from work at York Corporation again. Chapter 189 Chapter 189 Chapter 189 ¡°That reminds me. I need to talk to you about something. ¡± Serenity changed the subject at hand. By the sound of her cheerful tone, Zachary could tell his silence did not drive her mad. For some reason, it did not sit well with Zachary that she was not angry. ¡°What is it?¡± ¡°Nana wants to stay at our ce on the weekend. She told me to discuss it with you in case you¡¯d say no. You¡¯re her grandson, so of course, you¡¯re going to be okay with it. ¡± Grandma May simply did not want to intrude on the couple¡¯s alone time. Well, it was all in Grandma May¡¯s head. There was no alone time between her and Zachary as they were only a married couple byw. They were busy doing their own thing during the day. While at night, they slept on their own beds. They would only engage with each other when there was a reason to. Other times, they would not have the chance or time to chat. Serenity believed it would be a imagined ge of convenience, and now, it was exactly as she She had a little crush on Zachary, but because of Zachary¡¯s silence after she came to pick him up from work, the fire in Serenity was put out. It was best to abide by the six-month contract She would be single again five monthster, Zachary really did not want his nana toe. Nana was a sly fox who loved to pull a fast one on her grandchildren. Knowing that he and Serenity were merely husband and wife in name, Nana would stay over and make every effort to luck them into the same bed ¡°We have our things to do on the weekend None of us have time to keep Nanapany. She might as well remain in her own house. Her sons and daughters-inw are retired, so they can spend time with her. ¡± Listening to Zachary, Serenity tilted her head and looked at him. It was no wonder Nana kept asking her to talk to Zachary about it instead of taking it upon herself to make the decision The guy preferred if his nana did note to his ce. https://noveltk. It¡¯s for two days. Nana said that she¡¯ll only be arriving in the afternoon if she does make it. I don¡¯t think it¡¯s a big deal if Nana stays at our ce She used to hang around my shop She cane with me to the shop if she¡¯s staying over ¡°Mr.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. York, she¡¯s your nana. Your grandmother. ¡± Zachary thought to himself, ¡®Do you think I¡¯d marry you if Nana hadn¡¯t asked?¡¯ Yet, he said, ¡°I¡¯m not saying Nana can¡¯te. Alright now. I¡¯ll call Nana to talk about thister. ¡± Serenity kept to herself for a while before she probed, ¡°Mr.York, is your rtionship with Nana¡­ Um¡­ Not so good? Don¡¯t you think it¡¯s a little quiet at our ce? It¡¯ll be livelier to have another person in the house. ¡± Nana was rather fun-loving. Serenity believed Nana¡¯s presence would bring some life to the house, ¡°I moved out to enjoy the peace and quiet. ¡± There was a pause before Serenity replied, ¡°Okay then. You should talk to Nana You make the call. ¡°I still think it¡¯s too quiet at our ce. Nana¡¯s only going to stay for a couple of days if shees. Mr.York, can I get two dogs and two cats to join the family?¡± Turning his head, Zachary nced at her before moving his eyes back to the road He said faintly, ¡°Dogs and cats can¡¯t speak the human language Plus, they wreck the house, shed fur, and defecate everywhere. I hate it. Of course, I have no problem with you having pets if you keep them locked in your roor ¡®t want to see them roaming around the house. ¡± Serenity was rendered speechlu. Chapter 190 Chapter 190 Chapter 190 Well, that killed the conversation Without another word, Serenity quietly sat there and looked at the streetscape outside the window. Liberty had just arrived when Serenity and Zachary reached the shop. ¡°Liberty,¡± Serenity said as she got out of the car. Liberty turned around and noticed that it was her sister and Zachary. With her plump face beaming, she asked, ¡°Where were you and Zacharying back from?¡± ¡°I went to his workce to call him over for lunch. How was it, Liberty? Did you find a job?¡± Zachary came down from his car and greeted Liberty, to which thetter responded with a sinile. However, Liberty appeared beaten when her sister mentioned work. Shaking her head, she replied, ¡°Not yet. 1 submitted a bunch of resumes, but I either hadn¡¯t heard back or got a t out refusal. ¡± After a pause, Liberty added, ¡°When they heard I have a two-year-old at home, they said I¡¯d be preupied and distract my kid is young. It got me so riled up. Who said a mother with a toddler can¡¯t focus at huone ¡°I told them that someone will look after my kid, so I would definitely give my everything during working hours. They refused to listen and turned a deaf ear. It seems mothers now face discrimination when looking for a job. ¡± Liberty was tired and hungry from the morning of job-hunting. Still, it came to nothing. Her mind wandered back to when her inws criticized that she would not be able to live if she left Hank Liberty had been out of touch with society for three years, After a long hiatus, Liberty would not have the luxury of picking a workce. Instead, she was at the mercy of the hiringpanies. Here she was, dreaming about getting back into her finance director role. Now it seemed she would be lucky to find a job in any industry at all. ¡°It¡¯s okay, Liberty. There¡¯s no rush. Take your time. You¡¯ll find a suitable job. ¡± Serenity consoled her sister while linking arms with her sister as they entered the shop. ¡°Let¡¯s have lunch and a rest. You can continue the job huntter. Maybe you can submit your job applications online and wait until you¡¯re called for an interview to go out. ¡± ¡°I submitted a few applications online, but hadn¡¯t received many callbacks for an interview. ¡± As for returning to the working scene, Liberty was confident at first, but the morning job hunt cast a shadow of doubt on her. Perhaps she should lower her standards. It did not have to be a job in finance. She could try something else ¡°Has Sonny been good?¡± ¡°He¡¯s been good. He had fun with Jasmine. He was taking a nap after his meal when I was on my way out to pick Zachary up. He must still be asleep. ¡± Liberty grinned. ¡°He¡¯s a cheeky monkey when I watch over him but he¡¯s a good boy for someone else, I see. ¡± She went to check on her son. With her son sleeping soundly, Liberty reached out to caress his little face and leaned in for a kiss. Liberty then came out to join everybody for lunch. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡°Mr. York, have some more since you work a lot. ¡± Serenity gave her man an extra helping of food. Picking up that her sister called her brother-inw Mr.York, Liberty said, ¡°It¡¯s strange that you address Zachary as Mr.York. ¡± Serenity giggled. ¡°it¡¯s fine. I always call him different names. It¡¯s all him anyway. He¡¯s used to it. ¡± Zachary echoed her im, ¡°Liberty, we call each other whatever we want to. Sometimes, I¡¯d call her Ms. Hunt. ¡± Liberty answered with a smile, ¡°Alright, alright. I see you have your little fun there. Whatever floats your boat. ¡± She and Hank would call each other ¡°honey¡± all day when they were most in love as newlyweds. Somewhere down the road, Liberty started to call Hank by his name and vice versa. Chapter 191 Chapter 191 After the meal, Liberty wanted to go home and rest. Liberty felt exhausted having looked for a job all morning Her confidence took a hit as she did not get to find a job. Thus, she wanted to go home and rewrite a few resumes while mentally preparing herself to see if she could get hired. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll take you back,¡± Serenity said. Liberty looked at her brother-inw, Zachary said timely, "I''ll head back to the office then.¡± ¡°Okay. Drive carefully,¡± Liberty instructed. After her brother inw left, Liberty carried her son, who was still asleep, and got into her sister''s car. "If Zachary doesn''t have a long lunch break, you can send him back to his office so he doesn¡¯t have to drive Else he won''t get to rest during his break." "Alright," Serenity said as she started the car. She would never go to York Corporation again However, Serenity did not say this aloud lest her sister lectured her. Serenity could tell how much Liberty approved of Zach- brother-inw. ? Lunch break was over by the returned to the office. As soon as he got out of the elevator, the secretary saw him and said respectfully, "Mr. York, Mr.Bucham is waiting for you." Zachary nodded while walking toward his office with steady steps. At the same time, he instructed the secretary, "Please make me a cup of coffee without sugar or milk." He liked his coffee ck The secretary replied instinctively, "But you don''t drink coffee in the afternoon." Zachary usually drank a cup of coffee in the morning, which could keep him awake all day. If he drank another cup in the afternoon, he would not be able to sleep at night. Therefore, Zachary did not drink coffee in the afternoons. Zachary did not respond to the secretary, and the secretary did not dare say another word. After Zachary entered the office, the secretary quickly made coffee for his boss. Entering his office, Zachary saw that Josh was standing by the window, looking out with a pair of binocrs. Zachary had a heavy expression on his face as he strode over and took back the binocrs. "Don''t touch my things." "Someone sounds a little guilty..." Josh teased further, "You put it on the table, so ljust took a look" The two returned to the table and sat down. Zachary put the binocrs away. "Did your wifee at noon?" "Josh, are you so free that you only know how to gossip every day?" Josh chuckled.This is from N?velDrama.Org. "Working for you is so boring. Now that you finally have something interesting going on in your life, I just can''t help but gossip. Your miniature tree is a little bigger than the one on Callum''s desk Your wife is certainly skilled in making such life-like sculptures." Zachary said nkly. "How can Callumpare to me?" He was Serenity''s husband while Callum was just Serenity''s cousin-inw. Josh said, "I''ll ask my secretary to ce an order for meter. I''ll buy a bigger one to put on my desk Let''s see if I can actually make a fortune!" Zachary nced at him. "You''d better buy all the handicrafts in her store." "I work for you, and you pay me wages. But you want me to spend my wages at your wife''s store? That means my sry is going into your wife''s wallet. Zachary, can you be more cunning?" "Next time, I''ll dig a big hole and bury you in it. That''ll show you how cunning I can be." Josh surrendered, "Okay, okay! I won''t make fun of you." "Is Remy gone?" Zachary asked about the business from earlier. "Yup, he left. He returned to Anni after signing the contract and having lunch. His bodyguards... really don''t leave his side. Chapter 192 ? Chapter 192 Zachary said lightly, "Remy''s self-defense isn''t up to par. The Johnsons, like my family in Wiltspoon, are the richest family in Annenburg. For safety reasons, Remy has no choice but to bring more bodyguards everywhere he goes. It''s not like you''re not aware of this fact, so why are you making a fuss now? If you¡¯re envious of Remy¡¯s ostentation, you can also hire eight to ten bodyguards to follow you around." Josh did not have bodyguards because he was proficient in martial arts. Moreover, not many people knew of his identity, so it would be too conspicuous for him to go out with bodyguards. The two were talking about business when the secretary knocked on the door. ¡°Mr.York, this is the coffee you asked for." The secretary brought over the freshly brewed coffee and ced it gently in front of Zachary. After the secretary left, Josh joked with his friend-cum-boss. "You don''t have the energy to work after your little romantic- ¡®zvous with your wife, huh? You should drink two more cups of coffee then." Zachary''s face was glum. Romantic rendezvous? Zachary felt that there was some unpleasantness between him and Serenity Serenity came to pick him up for lunch, but he was not too happy about it.Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Although Serenity did not say anything or let alone get mad at him, Zachary had a feeling that she would nevere to pick him up at his office again "What''s with the long face? Did you two quarrel? I thought your wife was good-tempered." Serenity did not seem like an unreasonable person acharya was silent for a long time and did not tell Josh the reason. Josh was tight lipped, but he was nosy Zachary was afraid that if Josh knew too much, he would identally spill everything when he was drunkHowever, Zachary wanted to ask Josh for some advice to ease the invisible deadlock between him and Serenity Thus, Zachary said, "I think I hurt her feelings." Josh''s eyes lit up. He asked repeatedly, "How did you hurt her feelings? Tell me more about it." Zachary kicked Josh from under the table Josh felt the lock and said with a grin. "You only said half of the story and left me hanging Zachary, I don¡¯t take in students like you.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t need to low how I hurt her.Just tell me what should I do?" "Give her a gift Ishery''s for blurred plum Hecke noe bring, hinsell to do ront things like thar "The most direct method is also the most effective one. All you gotta do is jump her and give it to her real good. I guarantee she won''t stay mad at you." After Josh finished what he had to say, hewas kicked by Zachary again. Josh got up and dragged his chair far away from Zachary so that Zachary could not reach him. "You''re husband and wife after you get a marriage license. All married couples have sex. Are you two staying abstinent forever?" Zachary frowned. He did not even allow Serenity to step into his room for fear she would take advantage of him. Zachary also did not want to go into Serenity''s room for fear of seeing something he should not have seen, like the first night. "But I guess that''s your usual style. After all, your nana forced you to marry her. You might even get divorced soon." Josh knew Zachary well, so he figured that Zachary and Serenity weremerely husband and wife on paper and lived a very dull life. "You''re looking forward to my divorce?" Zachary asked gloomily. He picked up the cup of coffee al......two sips. Josh smiled and said. "Why would I look forward to your divorce? That doesn''t do me any good. I just know that with your temperament, you probably don''t n to spend the rest of your life with Serenity. You married her for your nana''s sake. Otherwise, you wouldn''t have kept your marriage a secret. "Hiding your marriage is unfair to your wife. She''ll feel aggrieved because of it. If you don''t care that her feelings are hurt, it means you don''t n to live with her for therest of your life. In this case, it''s actually better for her to keep your marriage a secret for her protection. That way, she won''t be affected and can remarry after you two get divorced." For some reason, Zachary felt ufortable after listening to Josh''s analysis, especially when Josh talked about the possibility of Serenity''s second marriage. Chapter 193 ? Chapter 193 "Duncan asked us out for lunch tomorrow at our usual spot. That guy always goesback to the same ce with us every time! I know the food at Grace''s Diner is delicious, but I wouldn''t bother to go if it wasn''t for Grandma May''s Beans and Cream next door. At least we can hang out at the cafe." "We used to go there often. Duncan is such a nostalgic guy," Zachary chimed in. Before they got to their current positions in thepany, Zachary was not yet a manager and was still in training. Even then, he also did not like to reveal his identity, so he would often eat at regr diners with his friends Beans and Cream was thergestand fanciest care in Wiltspoon. The clothing stores and restaurants nearby were not exactly low-end either. That was because low-end stores would not be able to receive the flow of customersing from Beansand Cream. The patrons of Beans and Cream were mostly working professionals who liked to treat themselves. They would often try out other restaurants or buy some clothes nearby Beans and Cream. Therefore, the bustling street red around Beans and Cream had a range of mid to-high-end stores. "Are you going?" "Of course, especially since it''s his treat!" Zachary had a rare smile on his face, which showed how great hisfriendship with Josh and Duncan was. Part of the reason Zachary decided to join Duncan for lunch was because of their friendship. Another reason was to avoid meeting Serenity at home, which would be too awkward.C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org "Then I''ll go too. It''s finally the weekend when I can rx! After lunch, let''s chill at your nana''s cafe andhave a barbecue by the beach at night?" Zachary refused. He would rather y golf than go for a barbecue. Josh chattered on for a long time before leaving. After Josh left, Zachary called his grandma. "Zack, did Serenity tell you?" "Yes." Zachary said in a low voice. "Nana, you''re so forgetful at your age, so let me remind you again. I''ve already fulfilled your wish to marry Serenity, and you promised not to interfere in our rtionship after our marriage." The olddywas speechless. What a hot-tempered punk! If Grandma May did not intervene, how long would she have to wait to get a great granddaughter? Sigh! She was so anxious! Zachary did not care about his grandmother''s reaction and hung up the phone when he finished speaking. He started to focus on his pile of work after drinking half a cup of coffee. It was not untilte at night that Zachary finished liis work and went home. When he got home, it was already past one o''clock in the morning, and Serenity was already asleep. Their big house was quiet with no signs of life as Serenity would say. Serenity wanted a pet dog, but Zachary really disliked pets. She was enough for him. After sitting quietly in the hall for a while, Zachary returned to his room. The night was silent and uneventful. The next day. Zachary woke up mid-morning. Serenity was no longer at home, but she had thoughtfully bought him breakfast and put it on the dining table so he could see it as soon as he cameout of his room. Zachary walked over and saw a note on the table. He picked up the note that read, "I''m going to my sister''s house and won''te back for lunch. You can sort it out by yoursell." Zachary crumpled the note into a ball and threw it in the trash can. It so happened that he was going to have lunch with his friends at noon, so they went their separate ways. Zachary lifted the lid of the disposable box and saw the breakfast Serenity bought for him - a breakfast burrito. He did not feel like eating it, so he closed the lid, took the box, and was about to throw it in the trash. However, he suddenly stopped. Chapter 194 ? Chapter 194 After some thought, Zachary finally sat down at the dining table. He opened the lid of the disposable box and silently ate the breakfast burrito thathe was not a fan of. Zachary had to admit that living with Serenity made him more like an ordinary person. He ate a lot of street food that he had never tried before, After breakfast, Zachary wentto the balcony. He sat down on the swing and admired Serenity''s flowers and nts. He sat there until eleven o''clock when he received a phone call from Josh reminding him of their lunchappointment. Zachary then went back to his room, got dressed, and went out. Knowing that Serenity was at her sister''s house, Zachary thought they would not cross paths, so instead of driving thenational MPV, he sat in his luxurious Rolls-Royce. As usual, he was ostentatiously escorted to Grace''s Diner by a convoy of bodyguards. The convoy parked in front of Grandma May''s cafe, and Zachary walked to the diner so it would not cause much of amotion. When Zachary arrived at the diner, Duncan and Josh were already seated. They waved to Zachary, who walked over with a group of bodyguards. The bodycuards automatically sat down at the table next to the three of them. That way, they were close enough to protect their boss but far enough to not disturb their boss''s meal. Only Duncan and Josh could invite Zachary to this kind of ce. They were seated in the most remote corner of the diner, so it was very quiet. "Zachary, you order." Duncan handed the menu to Zachary. Zachary did not pick up the menu and said nkly. "We''re regrs here, so just tell the manager that we''ll have our usuals." "You don''t want to try anything new?" Josh interjected,"He''s a picky eater. He might not eat anything if we order something new. Let''s just order our usuals." Seeing that his friends did not want to order anything new, Duncan called the waiter over to write down their regrorder. "I need to use the bathroom." Zachary got up and left. A bodyguard also got up and followed him. They were not worried that someone would attack Zachary here, but they were worried that women might throw themselves at Zachary. Zachary was a major chick ma. He was always the focus of the crowd wherever he went. "Shawn, have some more.This is from N?velDrama.Org. Make sure you eat till your heart''s content!" Aftering out of the bathroom, Zachary suddenly heard a familiar voice. It belonged to his wife, Serenity. Zachary searched for the source of the voice and spotted Serenity at a table not far away by the window. The table was full of appetizing dishes. Serenity and Shawn were sitting face to face, chatting andughing with each other. Serenity even put something on Shawn''s te and smiled at him as she urged him to eat more. Even though Jasmine was sitting next to Serenity, Zachary was bothered when he saw this scene. Shawn had a crush on Serenity. He was Zachary''s love rival. Serenity told Zachary that she was going to her sister''s house. She lied to him! She was clearly having a meal with Zachary''s love rival! The bodyguard also saw this scene. "Sir, the missus is only having lunch with her friends." The bodyguard defended Serenity in a low voice. Zachary said nothing and walked away. The bodyguard cast a sympathetic look at Serenity, who was oblivious to all of this and quicklyfollowed in Zachary''s footsteps. Serenity did not know that Zachary patronized the diner too. She treated Shawn to lunch because she owed Shawn a favor. She had always regarded Shawn as her younger brother, so she would put food on Shawn''s te when they ate together, and hewould do the same for her. She did not think much about it at all. Little did she know that a silent storm was brewing and that she would get into trouble when her husband saw such a scene. Chapter 195 ? Chapter 195 Zachary went back to his table with a calm face. After the dishes were served, he ate quietly without joiningin on his friends* conversation. All he kept thinking about was Serenity smiling and putting food on Shawn''s te. "Zachary, you''re acting a little weird today." Duncan picked up a vegetable with a fork and ate it. He looked at Zachary, who was sitting across from him, and said, "Why are you soquiet today? You just kept shoving food into your inouth." Josh nodded in agreement. Zachary said nkly,"I''m hungry." He only ate a breakfast burrito that he did not like in the morning. It was not filling, and he was famished. of course, Zachary was also in a bad mood. When he was in a bad mood, he would just eat non-stop. Zachary thought, ''So what if she serves Shawn food? I don''t care. Did she think I''ll get jealous? As he said before, he did not know what jealousy was and would never experience it! They werejust husband and wife in name and had signed an agreement that they would not interfere with each other''s private affairs. Serenity needed to find her next husband before their divorce. As long as she and Shawn did not move in together while she was married to Zachary and did not cheat on him,Zachary would turn a blind eye to it. Zachary quietly persuaded himself. However, images of Serenity and Shawn chatting andughing kept appearing in his mind. Duncan and Josh knew that Zachary could not stand being nagged by his grandmother and finally married the woman who saved his grandmother. Hearing Zachary say that he was hungry, Josh teased, "Aren''t you a married man? How can you get hungry? Didn''t your wife prepare a good breakfast foryou?" When Josh met Zachary in the office and offered to buy breakfast for Zachary, Zachary always showed off to Josh, saying that he was a married man. Josh even reached out to tug at Zachary''s sleeve, "You''re a married man, so you should wearthe clothes your wife bought for you." Zachary looked indifferent.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. He raised his hand to p Josh''s hand away and said coldly, "She and I are just husband and wife in name. We''ll asionally put on an act in front of Nana." Serenity was busy talking andughing with Shawn and serving him food. She did not have time to make breakfast for Zachary and only bought a cheap breakfastburrito for him. Zachary did not like breakfast burritos to begin with. However, he considered that she bought it for him, so she would feel like her money had gone to waste if he threw it away. Thus, he forced himself to eat it. Moreover, Serenity only bought him a suit jacket and a few tiesst time. She did not buy him any casualwear. He could not possibly wear a suit at home on weekends, right? Oh, right. Serenity only gifted him the suit jacket as a token of appreciation for helping her deal with the trending story on Twitter. She was grateful to him, so the suit was justpensation! "Tsk! Your act was sogood that I almost believed you two were a model couple. I was even contemting whether to get married at first sight!" Joshughed and said, "Duncan, you don''t know how often Zack shows off his marriage at theoffice. I thought being single was great, but seeing him constantly unting his happy married life, I almost went to gethitched myself!" Duncan smiled and said. "Then you''d better hurry up. With your conditions, many women would throw themselves at you as soon as you put out the word thatyou''re looking for a wife." Duncan was different. He had a good family background as the fourth son of the Lewis family. However, he had a frightening scar on his face. He did not have a girlfriend because he had not met someone to his liking and women disliked his scarred face. Duncan was a tall and big man. With a scar on his face, most people thought that he looked too fierce. However, he did not care. He decided to go with the flow when it came to love and marriage. Unlike his good friend, Duncan did not want to be forced by his grandmother to marrya woman he had no feelings for. Chapter 196 ? Chapter 196 Duncan would not be happy even if it was just a nominal marriage that was kept hidden. Zachary listened to his two friends joking around and keptsilent while continuing to eat his meal. Soon, he was full. "I''m going to my nana''s cafe. You two can take your time eating here." Zachary put down his cutlery and wiped the oil stains around his mouth with a tissue beforegetting up to leave. "We''re done eating. Well go with you!" Duncan and Josh also put down their cutlery and went to Beans and Cream next door withZachary. The bodyguards had gotten their fill too. Seeing that their boss was leaving, they silently got up and walked out quietly to protect their boss. They were afraid of disturbing the boss''s wife. Serenity was eating with Shawn, who had seen Zachary before, so the bodyguards could not alert Serenity. Otherwise, Zachary''s identity would bepromised. Duncan went to pay the bill. Josh waited for Duncan to settle the bill and walked out with him. He whispered, "Duncan, don''t you think Zachary is acting weird today? Well, when he came in, he wasstill normal.C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org He didn''t look so cold." Everyone knew how calm and grim Zachary was, but Zachary would not be so aloof when he was with his friends in private. "I think his mood changed after he returned from the bathroom." Josh suddenly stopped in his tracksand turned to go back. He said, "I''ll go check out what he encountered in the bathroom." Duncan grabbed and dragged him out before saying funnily. "Even if he did see something. it''s already been so long! I doubt it''ll still be there. Zachary has always been like this. You''re overthinking it." Duncan did not think that anyone or anything could affect Zachary''s mood change in an instant. Zachary was calm in nature and held the same expression even when the sky was falling. "I didn''t overthink it. He must''ve seen something that made him so bitter." Josh was really curious about what Zachary saw inthe bathroom. He whispered again." Duncan, do you think he might''ve bumped into a couple having sex in the bathroom and thought it wasdisgusting? That''s why he was in such a bad mood?" Duncan was speechless. However, Shawn was nowhere to be seen. Although his love rival was gone, Zachary still looked glum and stiff. After hearing his friend''s question, he said in a low voice, "She doesn''t know you two." LILIT Duncan and Josh were speechless. That was true. Serenity did not know who they were and would not recognize them, so there was no need for them to avoid her. Seeing Zachary sitting still, Josh teased, "You''re not going to say hello to her?" Zachary said indifferently. "She has her circle of friends, and I''m not close with her friends, so there''s no need to say hello." Josh shrugged his shoulders. After all, Serenity was not his wife. If Zachary was not bothered to say hello, Josh and Duncan would not go over either. The seats Serenity and Jasmine picked were a little far from where Zachary was seated. Serenity sat with her back facing him, so she did not notice that he was there. However, he could easily see her every move. Zachary, who was still angry, was indifferent to his wifeing to the cafe. He did not greet her, nor did he spare another nce at her, as if she was a total stranger. Chapter-197 Chapter 197 Serenity did not know that Zachary was having lunch at Grace¡¯s Diner with his friends, Serenity, Jasmine, and Shawn chatted while they ate and spent quite some time there. Shawn received a call and had to excuse himself by leaving early, so Serenity said, ¡°Jas and I are done eating. l¡¯ll get the bill soon. Shawn, you can go ahead and deal with whatever you need to. Jas and I will go to the cafe next door.¡± Serenity fell in love with Beans and Cream¡¯s tranquility thest time sheapanied Jasmine on a blind date there. This street was busy, so surrounding businesses were booming. The owner of the case was willing to spend money on sound instion, so when customers walked into the case, the noise outsidewould be filtered out. Shawn thought that his cousin drove, so she could take Serenity hometer. He said, ¡°Jas, Serenity, I¡¯ll get going then.¡± ¡°Go ahead! Drive carefully on the road,¡± Jasmine urged her cousin.¡° Jas, please send Serenity hometer.¡± Serenity had a car, but she seldom used it because gas was getting more expensive. A full tank would cost her hundreds of dors. Serenity would not use the car unless necessary. Managing a home required careful nning. Although Zachary gave her a considerable sum for household expenses, Serenity could not squander it. Jasmine said with a smile, ¡°Yeah, I¡¯ll send Serenity home even if you don¡¯t remind me. Hurry up and go do your work. It¡¯s so sad that you can¡¯t have a peaceful meal on a weekend. ¡± It was not easy to be the sessor of a bigpany. Shawn was a little reluctant, but he still had to take his leave. After Serenity settled the bill, she walked out of the restaurant linking arms with Jasmine. They walked to the nearby cafe, Beans and Cream. As soon as Serenity entered the cafe, Zachary¡¯s bodyguards spotted her.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. They immediately notified Zachary. Zachary was not drinking coffee. He just wanted to sit at his nana¡¯s cafe to calm himself down and forget about Serenity¡¯s effect on him. Hearing about Serenity¡¯s arrival from his bodyguard, Zachary¡¯s face turned tense, cold, and stiff. At that moment, even Duncan noticed Zachary¡¯s change in mood. Duncan and Josh exchanged nces. Duncan said, ¡°Should Josh and I give you some space?¡± Zachary looked at the door, only to see Serenitying in while holding Jasmine¡¯s arm. However, Shawn was nowhere to be seen. Although his love rival was gone, Zachary still looked glum and stiff. After hearing his friend¡¯s question, he said in a low voice, ¡°She doesn¡¯t know you two.¡± Duncan and Josh were speechless. That was true. Serenity did not know who they were and would not recognize them, so there was no need for them to avoid her. Seeing Zachary sitting still, Josh teased, ¡°You¡¯re not going to say hello to her?¡± Zachary said indifferently, ¡°She has her circle of friends, and I¡¯m not closewith her friends, so there¡¯s no need to say hello.¡± Josh shrugged his shoulders. After all, Serenity was not his wife. If Zachary was not bothered to say hello, Josh and Duncan would not go over either. The seats Serenity and Jasmine picked were a little far from where Zachary was seated. Serenity sat with her back facing him, so she did not notice that he was there.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org. However, he could easily see her every move. Zachary, who was still angry, was indifferent to his wifeing to the cafe. He did not greet her, nor did he spare another nce at her, as if she was a total stranger. Chapter 198 Chapter 198 Josh was a little dumbfounded when he saw this. Was Zachary merely acting all this while when he showed off about his wife? However,Grandma May no longer cared about thepany affairs and rarely went to the office, so there was no need for Zachary to act in front of Josh. Josh was confused. Forget it. That was Zachary¡¯s private affairs, so Zachary could manage it liimself. They were just Zachary¡¯s friends and would just wait to watch the drama unfold with some popcorn in hand. If there was no drama to watch, Josh would just go home and sleep. Two hourster, Serenity looked at the time and saw that it was already three o¡¯clock in the afternoon. She said to her friend, ¡°Jas, let¡¯s go back. I have to go to my sister¡¯s house.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Jasmine also looked at the time and did not objectto Serenity wanting to go home. ¡°Let¡¯s drop by the supermarketter to buy some fruit and toys for your sister and Sonny.I want to visit your sister¡¯s house with you.I don¡¯t want to go home to see my mother¡¯s disgruntled face.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Who told you to pass out at the Dawsons¡¯ dinner party? You embarrassed yourself and your aunt, so it¡¯s not surprising thatyour mom will be mad at you.¡± Jasmine thought about what she did and said with a smile, ¡°So be it! I don¡¯t care if I embarrass myself. It¡¯s better than having my mom and aunt think that I¡¯m Ms.Universe and can be a queen one day. Now that they¡¯vepletely lost hope in me, I can finally have some peace! ¡°Hey, Serenity. Look at that table of three. Is one of them your husband?¡± When Jasmine got up, she saw Zachary and quickly patted Serenity¡¯s hand so Serenity could confirm it. Serenity followed her friend¡¯s line of vision and looked over. It was indeed her husband. ¡°It¡¯s him.¡± Zachary¡¯s aloofness was one-of-a-kind in Wiltspoon. Serenity could confirm that it was him anywhere with a nce. ¡°Do you want to go over and say hello?¡± Serenity said hesitantly, ¡°He¡¯s with his friends, and I don¡¯t know them,so I¡¯d better not go over to say hello.¡± In fact, Serenity had never seen any of Zachary¡¯s friends. He would not tell lier about them either, ¡°Then, let¡¯s just slip away quietly. Belonging ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Jasmine felt that it was not good todisturb thern either, so she thought they could slip away before Zachary noticed them. Serenity shared the same idea. Thus, the twodies slipped away quickly and quietly. Little did they know that Zachary had noticed them long ago. Seeing that Serenity pretended not to see him and chose to slip away without saying hello, Zachary snorted coldly and thought, ¡®I won¡¯t talk to her even if she came over to say hello. ¡®At least she has some self-awareness! Aftering out of Beans and Cream, Serenityughed toherself. ¡°Why do I feel like I¡¯m acting like a thief?¡± Jasmineughed at her. ¡°That¡¯s because you didn¡¯t want to go over to say hello to your husband and decided to sneak out like a thier.¡± ¡°His expressionwas so grim that I was afraid he¡¯d pretend not to know me if I went to say hello.That would¡¯ve been awkward¡­¡± The two of them kept their marriage a secret. After Jasmine gave it a thought, she said, ¡°That¡¯s possible. Look at all these luxury cars! That¡¯s a Rolls-Royce!¡± Serenity nced at the luxury cars nonchntly and said, ¡°Yousaid that Beans and Cream is thergest and fanciest cafe in the city, so isn¡¯t it normal to see luxury cars here? By the way, there¡¯s a Rolls-Royce in my neighborhood too.C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org It looks simr to that one. ¡°It¡¯s always parked downstairs right outside my block.Anyway, I can see that luxury car almost every day when I go to work.¡± Serenity felt like Brynfield¡¯s valuewas suddenly raised a notch because of that luxury car¡¯s existence. Chapter 199 Chapter 199 Jasmine asked in surprise, ¡°Really? Brynfield is a high-end neighborhood, but I didn¡¯t expect someone who drivesa Rolls-Royce would live there.If they¡¯re so rich, why not live in a vi?¡± ¡°Mr.York said that perhaps some rich kid went to a nearby school, so the parents bought an apartment for the kid in Brynfield.That way, it¡¯s more convenient for the kid to travel to school.That family might have countless vis.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°True. Let¡¯s go to the supermarket.By the way, didn¡¯t Grandma May say that she¡¯sing over?¡± ¡°Not anymore.¡± ¡°Why now?¡± ¡°The owner of the house disagreed.¡± Jasmine was speechless. The owner of the house was Zachary, Grandma May¡¯s grandson. Grandma May wanted toe over for the weekend, but her grandson did not allow it. What an unfilial child! The two got into Jasmine¡¯s car and left Beans and Cream. Shortly after, Jasmine parked the car in arge shopping mall. After strolling around the mall, the two of them came out with many bags of goodies. At this time, Serenity missed going to the mall with Zachary. With him around, he would help her carry the bags no matter how much she bought. After Jasmine put the things into the car, she was gasping for air. Content ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°This is the only time I think of wanting a man to apany me when I¡¯m out shopping. I didn¡¯t think about the logistics wherfi was buying all that stuff. Now that I¡¯m carrying all the bags, they¡¯re so heavy that my arms are about to break! I regret having bought so much¡­¡± Serenityughed. No wonder she and Jasmine could be best friends. They had the same thoughts. Serenity was just thinking about the benefits of going shopping with Zachary, but Jasmine said it first ¡°Hurry up and find a boyfriend, then!It¡¯ll be easier to go shopping in the future. ¡± Jasmine sat in the driver¡¯s seat and fastened her seat belt while she said, ¡°Ya think a good boyfriend is easy to find? I want one that suits me. Someone that I have feelings for. If a boyfriend like that is so easy to find, I wouldn¡¯t have been single all this while and wouldn¡¯t need to hide from myfamily because of their constant urging. ¡± ¡°You just haven¡¯t found the one for you yet. There¡¯s no rush. You¡¯re only twenty-five this year. You¡¯re young and can afford to be single for a couple more years. ¡± ¡°My mom wasn¡¯t so anxious before when you were stillsingle. Once you got married, my mother started to rush me as if I could never get married. She¡¯s been pushing me since then and wishing she could arrange a thousand blind dates for mein a day so I would be married off the next day. ¡± Jasmine could understand where her mother wasing from. Her mother thought Jasmine had better conditions than Serenity, but Serenity got married before her. Even if Serenity and Zachary got married at first sight, Zachary seemed like a decent man. On the other hand, Jasmine still did not have a boyfriend, and her blind dates fell through time and again. That was why Jasmine¡¯s mother was so anxious. Fortunately, Jasmine¡¯s mother stopped urging her to get married these days. That was because Jasmine was willing to go all out for some peace and quiet.N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Serenity giggled. She often saw Jasmine¡¯s mother and knew that Jasmine¡¯s mother was only anxious about Jasmine¡¯s marriage after seeing that she was married. ¡°Your mother is relentless, but that¡¯s normal with mothers. I want to have a mother to encourage me like this, but I can¡¯t even rememberwhat my mother looks like now¡­¡± Serenity¡¯s parents did not take many photos while they were still alive. Smartphones were not popr at that time, so the only photos of her parents left behind were a few which were kept by Liberty. Serenity had to look at the photos every time to remember what her parents looked like. Jasmineforted her friend while she drove. ¡°Your parents must be up in heaven, blessing you and Liberty. ¡± Serenity was silent. If her parents were in heaven blessing them both, the viral incident on Twitter would not have happened. Serenity and her sisters also would not have suffered through such a tough and pitiful childhood. Jasmine knew that parents were a heavy topic for her friend, so she quickly changed thesubject. It took a while to revive the mood. Chapter 200 Chapter 200 Jasmine and Serenity went to Liberty¡¯s apartment. Serenity got out of Jasmine¡¯s car. Her face stiffened when she saw a familiar car parked there. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± ¡°That car belongs to Liberty¡¯s sister-inw. She must¡¯vee to trouble my sister again. Liberty¡¯s sister-inw is definitely one of the worst people I know. She¡¯sparable to the rtives from my hometown.¡± ! Jasmine said, ¡°Let¡¯s hurry up, then. If she bullies Liberty, we¡¯ll kick her out together!¡± Serenity had already grabbed her things to head inside. Jasmine quickly followed. The Browns visited again. As usual, it was just Chelsea and Mrs.Brown. They came to persuade Liberty to take Hank back from their house. Hank went to live at his parents¡¯ house but ate his meals at his sister¡¯s house because his parents took care of Chelsea¡¯s children and cooked at her ce. Fortunately, both his parents¡¯ and sister¡¯s houses were close by. They were in the same neighborhood but opposite blocks. Chelsea watched as her parents bought loads of delicious food for her brother every day. Although her family also ate them, Chelsea was jealous of her parents¡¯ partial treatment of buying expensive food for her brother. Fortunately, Chelsea had a sense of propriety even though she was money hungry, so she did not express her difort. After enjoying the help of her parents for so long, Chelsea was used to theN?velDrama.Org owns this text. benefits of monopolizing her parents. Hank was at his parents¡¯ house for a few days, and Chelsea took the most initiative in trying to reconcile Hank and Liberty so he could return to his own home as soon as possible. ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s inevitable for a couple to quarrel and fight. There are only a handful of couples who had never quarreled or fought before. You should get over this after cooling down for a few days. Life has to go on, don¡¯t you think?¡± Chelsea said. ¡°Hank is a big man with a strong self-esteem, but he actually feels remorseful for hitting you that day. We¡¯re also wrong for taking his side. You shouldpromise and bring him back. Forget that it ever happened and continue to live a happy life like you always have.¡± As soon as Serenity opened the door, she heard Mrs. Brown persuading her sister. Chelsea said, ¡°Liberty, you should watch out for another woman stealing your husband if you keep giving Hank the cold shoulder. Hank is young and has a promising future. He¡¯s quite handsome and looks like a bachelor. Many young women have a thing for mature men like him with a sessful career.¡± Hank was a manager with a five-figure basic monthly sry. He also made extra money frommission, which would add up to nearly a hundred thousand dors a month. To Chelsea, Hank was considered a man with a sessful career. Therefore, Chelsea always looked down on Liberty, thinking that Liberty was not worthy of her brother. Moreover, Liberty still had yet promised to help take care of Chelsea¡¯s children, which greatly displeased Chelsea. Chelsea¡¯s oldest child was starting junior high school the next year. Her child¡¯s school pick-up and drop-off problem must be solved quickly. Naturally, Chelsea had to coax Liberty into agreeing. Otherwise, Chelsea would not willingly soften her stance and apany her mother to persuade Liberty. Liberty was feeding her son some porridge and did not seem to have not heard her inws. ¡°Sonny.¡± Mrs.Brown went to y with her grandson when she saw that her daughter-inw remained silent. Chapter 201 ? Chapter 201 Instead of answering whether he missed his father, Sonny only said, ¡°Daddy work!¡± Liberty and Serenity raised Sonny, and Sonny only got to see his father on weekends. When Sonny woke up, his father had already gone to work, and when Sonny fell asleep at night, his father had note home. Thus, Sonny did not have much of a bond with his father. Even when Hank was at home, Hank would not y with Sonny and rather y with his phone. "Liberty, look! Sonny grew distant from his dad after being apart for a few days. That''s not good for his growth. A boy can''t grow up without fatherly love. There are many things that fathers need to teach their sons." Mrs. Brown initially thought that her grandson would say that he missed his father, so she could use it as an excuse to make Libertypromise for Sonny''s sake. However, to her surprise, Sonny did not miss Hank. Fortunately, Mrs. Brown was quick-witted and made up a conversation, picking up from where her grandson left off. Liberty nced at her mother-inw and said coldly." Even if Hank is at home, have you ever seen him take care of Sonny? Sonny is our child, but I''ve been taking care of him by myself.This is from N?velDrama.Org. Hank doesn''t even y with Sonny, let "When Hank has nothing to do at home on weekends, he chats with people on his phone or watches videos whileughing like a fool. He doesn''t even want to y with his son. How could Sonny have a deep rtionship with a father like him?" Any rtionship must be cultivated. Even if Hank was Sonny''s biological father, their rtionship would not get any better if they did not spend time together to build a bond. Mrs. Brown opened her mouth, but she had nothing to say. Chelsea carried on with the conversation and said. "Hank is usually busy with work, so he needs to rx and rest at home on weekends. You don''t have a job and only stay at home to care for Sonny every day. Don''t tell me that you have a lot of housework to do. When your sister was living here, she helped out with the chores, so you didn''t do much. All you do is eat. Look at how fat you''ve be!" Hank disliked Liberty for getting fatter and uglier. Even Chelsea was disgusted by that. How could Liberty allow herself to eat until she was obese? "Come with us to bring Hank back after you''re done feeding Sonny. Hank''s wounds are healed, so he can go back to work on Monday. You two need to move on and stop quarreling because it''s not good for Sonny''s development." Chelsea muttered, "If you continue to be like this. you''ll regret it one day." Hank had a new lover During the few days when Hank took leaves of absence from work to recuperate at home, his new lover, Jessica Yates, came to take care of Hank every day after work. The two of them clung together like conjoined twins. Chelsea did not like Liberty and wished that Hank would dump Liberty. However, when they get divorced, her parents would want custody of Sonny since Sonny was their only paternal grandson. Sonny was a little over two years old and was very naughty. It would take a lot of energy to take care of Sonny. If her parents took care of Sonny, they could no longer help Chelsea to take care of her third child. Chelsea reminded Liberty not for Liberty''s sake, but for her own benefit. "This is Hank''s house. Did he break his leg or lose his sense of direction? Doesn''t he know how toe back on his own? Why does my sister have to pick him up? Who the hell does he think he is?!" Serenity could not stand it anymore and interjected them. She brought Jasmine into the house. Both of them carried many shopping bags. When Mrs. Brown and Chelsea saw Serenity, their faces turned glum. They went to Serenity''s bookstore toin to her, but they left in despair. Ant swer! As soon as Sonny saw Serenity, he stood up and stumbled over with a smile on his face. Sonny was ignorant and did not know what his grandma and aunt said to his mother, so their conversation did not affect his mood. Chapter 202 Chapter 202 Chapter 202 ¨C Serenity put the bags on the coffee table before hugging Sonny and asking him gently, ¡°Sonny, are you eating porridge?¡± Sonny nodded. ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°Are you full?¡± Sonny rubbed his belly, thought about it, and shook his head. He felt that he had not had enough and was still a little hungry. Serenity smiled. She sat down in front of the sofa and took the half-eaten bowl of porridge from her sister and said, ¡± I¡¯ll feed Sonny, okay?¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Jasmine greeted Liberty and put the things she was carrying on the coffee table too. She also nodded to t e Browns in greeting Liberty only turned around to talk to her inws after Serenity took over the task of feeding Sonny. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. ¡°I won¡¯t pick up Hank. He cane back whenever he wants. If he doesn¡¯t want to, you two will just need to take care of him.¡± Hank even asked Liberty to refund his share of the food expenses. What else could she say when they have alreadye to this point? Liberty knows she was also at fault. expenses, it added up to less than ten thousand dors. Hank made around seventy thousand dors and spent less than ten thousand dors on his little family. Liberty could not see or touch the remainder of his ie, so who knew whether he spent it elsewhere or saved it for himself? Oh, Hank also gave his parents an allowance every month, which was definitely higher than the expenses he gave Liberty. Therefore, how much Hank made had nothing to do with Liberty as his wife. Liberty did not know how her three-year marriage ended up like this. She actually endured all of this! Was it because of love? Maybe so. Liberty was shocked to realize how miserable she was after being disheartened and disappointed lately. This was not the marriage life she yearned for. If Serenity had not given her five thousand dors every month for the past few years, Liberty would have been even more miserable. Serenity had more foresight than Liberty and asked Liberty to save half of the 5,000 dors for herself. Otherwise, Liberty would regret it more. Liberty regretted being ipetent and living like that after marriage. Chapter 203 Chapter 203 Chapter 203 ¨C Hearing Liberty¡¯s rebuttal, Mrs.Brown opened her mouth to say something but could not speak N?velDrama.Org owns this text. . After all, Mrs.Brown was the one who suggested that her son split the household expenses with her daughter-inw. She knew that even without splitting it, her daughter inw had no control over her son¡¯s money. ¡° Mom, let¡¯s go.¡± Chelsea was displeased with Liberty¡¯s attitude and refused to let her mother waste another breath. She dragged her mother away and nced at the things Serenity and Jasmine bought for Liberty on the way out. As they arrived downstairs, Chelsea said to her mother,¡± Mom, you mentioned Serenity¡¯s husband works in argepany, right? Does he have a high ie? Since Serenity married him, her every visit came with lots of gifts. I nced at the bags and saw all those fruits she bought were very expensive. ¡°They¡¯re all imported and pricey fruits like durians and cherries. A durian costs at least two hundred dors and a pound of cherries cost tens of dors. ¡± Mrs.Brown said, ¡°Think about your brother¡¯s ie. Serenity¡¯s husband works for York Corporation, which is thergestpany in Wiltspoon. Your brother said that the people who work there are top talents in the country. with Hank, she could call her brothers to beat up Hank. This marriage would only work if Hank married Jessica and treated her like a princess. Chapter 204 Chapter 204 Chapter 204 ¨C Mrs.Brown said, ¡°I¡¯m a little worried about how much Hank listens to Jessica. That girl knows how to y hard-to-get and still hasn¡¯t given herself to Hank. The more Hank waits, the more he wants her. She¡¯s making Hank go head over heels for her. ¡°If they get married and Hank lets her take charge of his bank ount, our life will be tougher.¡± Chelsea thought about the monthly allowance her brother gave her parents and how it was used on her own family. She benefited a lot from that and did not want this benefit to be taken away by her new and soon-to-be sister-inw. Thus, she said, ¡°Forget it, then. That¡¯s Hank and Liberty¡¯s business. Let them deal with it.¡± ¡°As long as Hank can keep his affair hidden from Liberty, I won¡¯t interfere with it. Men aren¡¯t reliable. They¡¯ll fool around if they are rich and capable.¡± Mrs.Brown felt that her son was capable enough to attract a young and beautiful girl even when he was a father. Anyway, her son would not be at a loss no matter what. Liberty knew that her mother-inw and sister-inw would speak ill of her, but she did not know that they would help Hank to keep his extramarital affair a secret. After sending off the annoying mother and daughter, |Liberty said, ¡°Seren, Jasmine, why have you bought a bunch of things?¡± ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s just some fruits and snacks, nothing too expensive.¡± Jasmine smiled. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡°I thought that since you¡¯re home alone with Sonny, you can eat as much as you like. If you can¡¯t finish it, just put it in the refrigerator and take your time eating it. At least that way, it won¡¯t be taken away by unwanted guests.¡± She noticed how Chelsea took a nce at these things before leaving Last time, Hank gave away the gifts Serenity and Zachary bought for Liberty to his parents and sister, which infuriated her. After Serenity finished feeding her nephew, she brought a new toy to her nephew and let him y by himself. She asked her sister, ¡°Liberty, did you notice what Chelsea said?¡± ¡°What did she say?¡± Chelsea spoke too much earlier, so Liberty was not bothered to listen, let alone remember. ¡°She said that if you keep fighting with Hank, you should watch out for other women stealing your husband. I feel like she¡¯s binting at something. Maybe Hank does have a mistress. Liberty, you should keep an eye out for it. If he¡¯s cheating on you, collect evidence before you get a divorce. That way, you can fight for your share of the assets. You can¡¯t just let them keep everything.¡± Liberty was a little surprised, but at the same time, it was not totally unexpected. Hank paid a lot of attention to maintaining his figure. He wore suits and dress shoes every day, exuding the charm of a mature man with a sessful career. Even though he only drove a six-figure car, which he bought before his promotion to a managerial position and was still repaying the car loan, he was nevertheless a sessful man in the eyes of others. As long as he had the will, he could easily chase after young and beautiful girls to be his mistresses. ¡°I¡¯m not bothered about his affairs at the moment. Let me find a job first.¡± Liberty felt that the most important thing now was to get a job and a source of ie. She had a hunch that her marriage with Hank wasing to an end Chapter 205 Chapter 205 Chapter 205 ¨C Serenity agreed. ¡°I¡¯m only reminding you. Don¡¯t worry too much about finding a job.¡± Jasmine chimed in, ¡°Look slowly and find a job that suits you. If you really can¡¯t find one, why don¡¯t you help me and Serenity out at the store? I¡¯ll pay you well. Or¡­ would you like to start your own business, Liberty?¡± Liberty watched her son y. She sounded helpless as she said, ¡°I don¡¯t have that much capital to start my own business, and I don¡¯t know what kind of business I should take up. It¡¯s hard to do business in brick-and-mortar stores now.¡± Serenity¡¯s bookstore was right in front of Wiltspoon School, so their business was steady. If it was in a different location, it might not have survived. The small shops at the entrance of Wilt spoon School had a high rental, so not everyone could afford them. It took some connections to rent a shop there. Serenity only managed to rent that ce only because Jasmine¡¯s family helped out. ¡°Liberty, why don¡¯t I teach you to make some handicrafts? You can start an online business, so you can make money at home while taking care of Sonny. My online business is doing wonderfully now, and most of the products are preordered. I have plenty of orders now that I¡¯m kept busy every day.¡± This month, her online business earned more money than the bookstore. Even when the bookstore ordered several sets of study materials for students this month, its profit could not match her online business¡¯s. Serenity felt that she was blessed. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Her online business had been there for a few years, and the business had always been steady. However, it suddenly became popr this month, and the reviews were great. ¡°I also n to expand the operation of my online business. I don¡¯t want to limit it to handicrafts and want to learn to make some hair essories. I fancy those vintage hair essories.¡± Jasmine agreed with Serenity and felt that Serenity¡¯s business idea would work. Liberty smiled bitterly and said, ¡°Seren, I¡¯m not as creative as you are. I get a headache when I see the raw materials that you use to make handicrafts. This isn¡¯t something anyone can learn even if they want to. It requires interest and creativity. Otherwise, the business won¡¯t boom if there are no new products.¡± Serenity was indisputably creative. She kept this online business going for several years and was skilled with making handicrafts. If she had a new product idea, she would spend a long time designing it and making prototypes. She would only seed after making a few defects. Serenity had been in this line of business and was aware that what her sister said was true. She sighed and said, ¡± Well¡­ Then take your time looking for a job. I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll be able to find one. If you can¡¯t get into a bigpany, apply for smaller ones. Although you¡¯ll make less, you¡¯ll probably have less to dopared to a biggerpany. She had never worked in the corporate world and opened this bookstore with Jasmine after graduation. The online business started when she was twenty, and it had been five years since then. ustomed to freedom, Serenity was reluctant to be restricted in the corporate world. ¡°Seren, is Zachary working today?¡± Liberty asked about her brother-inw. ¡°No, he has two days off every weekend. When I went out this morning, he was still asleep. He¡¯s probably hanging out with his friends now.¡± Serenity took out her phone and shot a message to her husband. Serenity: [Mr. York, where are you now? What are you doing?] After some thought, she quickly sent another message to exin herself. Serenity: [I¡¯m not checking on you. I¡¯m just asking because my sister asked about you. Zachary did not reply to Serenity¡¯s messages after a long time. He was still sitting in Beans and Cream. He asked for a cup of ck coffee and drank it slowly. He had not finished it after several hours. Suddenly, he received two messages from Serenity. He read it but did not reply because he did not want to talk to her. Serenity had found herself a new boyfriend anyway. Zachary and Serenity would get a divorce as soon as their agreement expires. He swore he would do so without the slightest hesitation. ¡°Zachary, who messaged you? Is it your wife?¡± Josh teased. Zachary¡¯s face was gloomy as he said coldly, ¡°We¡¯re only husband and wife in name, just so I can return her favor for saving my grandma. To be honest, I signed an agreement with her. After half a year, we¡¯ll get a divorce due to ipatible personalities.¡± Chapter 206 Chapter 206 Chapter 206 ¨C It had been one month since Zachary married Serenity and there were five months left before they would get a divorce and go their separate ways. They would have nothing to do with each other then. Josh and Duncan looked at each other. Duncan said, ¡°I thought all the men in the York family can¡¯t get a divorce?¡± ¡°I¡¯m an exception.¡± Zachary added coldly, ¡°You know why I got married to Serenity. Even if I want a divorce, my nana can¡¯t say anything about me, let alone other people. All of them know that I¡¯ve suffered.¡± Yes, he had suffered. To repay the favor of saving his nana¡¯s life, Zachary married Serenity, who was aplete stranger. After marriage, he was generous and tolerant of her, but what did she do? Serenity lied about going to her sister¡¯s house when she was actually having lunch with Shawn. Zachary, who refused to admit that he was jealous, automatically ignored Jasmine¡¯s presence. He also forgot that Jasmine and Shawn were cousins who were close to each other ¡°Don¡¯t call her my wife in the future. She doesn¡¯t deserve me!¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was deep and cold. His handsome face was grim. Josh said to him, ¡°Weren¡¯t you showing off at the office the clothes that your wife bought for you two days ago? Why¡¯d you suddenly change your tune? Did you two get into an argument?¡± Zachary red at Josh. ¡°I didn¡¯t ask for your opinion.¡± He was a little annoyed when Josh reminded him of that. That was the first time Zachary wore such a cheap suit. He only wore it because she bought it for him. He thought they would be living together for a while, so he wanted to show some appreciation by wearing the clothes she gave him. On the flip side, she did not even notice it all day. Zachary seriously doubted that she even remembered what the clothes she bought for him looked like. ¡°I don¡¯t have time to argue with her! Let¡¯s go to my hotel for drinks. My treat.¡± Zachary was in a bad mood, which turned for the worse when his friend reminded him of this. He got up and went out to go to his hotel for drinks, ¡°Okay, we¡¯ll sacrifice our liver to apany you and drink to your heart¡¯s content today.¡± Josh and Duncan stood up. They followed Zachary and left Beans and Cream. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Someone secretly reported to Grandma May every move Zachary made in the caf¨¦. After receiving firsthand gossip, Grandma May asked the manager of the caf¨¦, ¡°Have you seen his wife in the caf¨¦?¡± The manager asked, ¡°Isn¡¯t Mr. York single?¡± The olddy smiled. ¡°Oh, look at me, I¡¯m getting old and forgetful! I think I¡¯ve been longing for a granddaughter-inw for so long that I¡¯ve gone delusional, thinking that Zack is married. Send me the surveince footage of the caf¨¦ today.¡± The manager was also aware of how much his boss was looking forward to her grandchildren getting married and thought she was a little delusional too. Thus, he did not have the slightest doubt about Grandma May¡¯s lies and said respectfully, ¡°Yes, ma¡¯am.¡± ¡°Alright, you can go about your work. Zack¡¯s always cold, like an iceberg. Sigh¡­ With his temper, I don¡¯t know when he¡¯ll be able to get married. I¡¯m so worried about him.¡± The manager did not know how to answer. Chapter 207 Chapter 207 Chapter 207 ¨C There was no reply from Zachary, so Serenity said to her sister, ¡°Zachary¡¯s probably having a good time with his friends. He didn¡¯t reply to my message yet.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have toe here tomorrow. Spend some quality time with Zachary.¡± Liberty had a failed marriage, so she hoped her sister¡¯s marriage would be better and longer than her own. She approved of Zachary as her brother-inw because he was genuinely kind to her sister and was more generous than Hank. Although Liberty had known Hank for a long time, Hank was reluctant to buy her a scooter even when he had ample savings. Serenity was the one who bought her the e-bike. ¡°Alright,¡± Serenity said. ¡°By the way, are the Hunts still looking for trouble with you?¡± Liberty asked about her money-hungry rtives. ¡°I wonder what happened to them. Grandmom had probably undergone the surgery by now.¡± ¡°They wanted to reconcile thest time they came over but didn¡¯t return after that. They¡¯re probably embarrassed. Besides, that trending story has been topped by new ones. There¡¯s no trace of it now, so the impact on them is limited. That¡¯s why they won¡¯te again.¡± What Serenity did not know was that Zachary helped her to solve the problem. She thought her money-hungry rtives were too embarrassed toe looking for her again. Liberty was relieved. In the evening after they had dinner, Liberty urged her sister to go home. Jasmine did not want to go back to face her mother¡¯s disappointed face, so she followed Serenity to Bryn field and visited Serenity¡¯s apartment. ¡°Serenity, your apartment is spacious and well-lit. I especially like your balcony. You can sit on the swing, read a book, and enjoy the flowers out here. How rxing! If you have a small coffee table in front of the swing, you can drink tea, too. It¡¯ll be even cozier.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°That¡¯s a great suggestion! I¡¯ll buy a small coffee table tomorrow and put it here.¡± ¡°I bought some of these flowers, and Zachary bought the rest. I don¡¯t know which florist he went to pick them up from. Their flowers are healthy, beautiful, and huge.¡± Serenity was truly satisfied with Zachary¡¯s way of doing things. ¡°Mr.York bought those flowers? They are beautiful. Can you ask him where he bought them? I want to buy a dozen pots from there and ce them on my balcony on the second story at home.¡± Serenity agreed. The two girls chatted for a long time, and Jasmine did not leave until after nine o¡¯clock in the evening. After Jasmine left, Serenity sat down on the sofa and watched Tv. Having lived in this apartment for a while, Serenity had rarely turned on the TV. Since Serenity did not usually watch shows, she did not know which channel to tune into when she turned on the TV. She then simply turned it off and scroll through some news, trending stories, and videos on her phone. Time flew by. When Serenity looked at the clock, it was already eleven at night. Serenity went into her room to take a bath. When she came out of the bathroom, she heard a knock on the apartment¡¯s door. Did Zachary not bring the key? Or was he drunk again? Serenity responded and opened the door. Jim was standing at the door, holding Zachary up. Zachary¡¯s face was flushed, and he smelled of alcohol. At a nce, Serenity knew that Zachary was drunk. ¡°Um¡­ I¡¯m the substitute driver. Your husband is drunk again, so I drove him back.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°It¡¯s you again! Thanks for taking my husband back.¡± She stretched out her hand to help Zachary, but Zachary pped her hand away and pushed Jim aside. His face was cold as he walked past Serenity. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Serenity had a good temper and did not throw a fit. She thanked Jim again before closing and locking the door. She turned around and saw Zachary sitting on the sofa. His whole body exuded a chill, and he seemed to be angry. Who pissed him off? Serenity was silent for a moment before she walked over and asked him, ¡°Why did you drink again? How much did you drink?¡± ¡°None of your business!¡± Chapter 208 Chapter 208 Chapter 208 ¨C Zachary was seething. Serenity was rendered speechless. Did he think she wanted to find out? Serenity was only concerned because he was her husband on paper. She turned around and left. When Zachary saw that Serenity walked away from him without a tinge of care for him, he became more upset. ¡°In the future, don¡¯t open the door in your pajamas!¡± Serenity walked toward the kitchen. ¡°I¡¯m wearing underwear.¡± Now that she was living with Zachary, she only took off her underwear before turning in lest she encountered a simr situation and had to open the door for him again. ¡°Mr.York, how I dress is none of your business. I remember the agreement you wrote stating that the two of us should not interfere in each other¡¯s private affairs.¡± Zachary said nothing. His face was glum. The agreement Zachary drew up back then waspletely in his favor. Every use was restraining her, but why did Zachary feel that he was being restrained instead? Serenity went into the kitchen and poured him a ss of warm water. When the water cooled down, she added some honey to the water and stirred it before she brought over the drink. Zachary leaned back against the sofa but could not fall asleep. When he saw Serenity walking out of the kitchen, he looked at Serenity indifferently. Serenity came over with the ss of honey water and ced it in front of him. ¡°I won¡¯t argue with you since you¡¯re drunk. Drink this ss of honey water before you head back to your room to wash up and sleep.¡± After she spoke, she turned on her heel and left. Suddenly, arge hand reached out and grabbed her wrist.This is from N?velDrama.Org. Serenity was pulled back by the force and fell into Zachary¡¯s arms. Although Zachary drank a good amount of alcohol, he was still nimble. Before Serenity had time to react, Zachary spun her around and pinned her down on the sofa. Serenity felt her eyes spinning for a while. When she came back to her senses, she had already been pressed down by Zachary on the sofa. ¡°Zachary, what the hell are you doing?!¡± Wasn¡¯t he the one always afraid that she would take advantage of him? Zachary was now on top of Serenity. Their bodies were stacked together like Legos. Who was taking advantage of whom? ¡°Did you really go to your sister¡¯s house today?¡± Zachary was in a bad mood all day because he saw Serenity and Shawn eating together. She even served Shawn some dishes. He told her countless times that she should not cheat on him during their marriage. Even if she wanted to find another boyfriend, she had to wait until their marriage was over. However, she did not listen to him. How much did she like Shawn? Shawn was just a young and clueless boy who was three years younger than Serenity. Did she want to be a cougar? She was indirectly looking down on Zachary for being old! ¡°I went to my sister¡¯s house.¡± Zachary stared at her intensely. His expression became even colder. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll give you another chance to confess.¡± ¡°What should I confess to? I didn¡¯t do anything wrong, Zachary. Why are you acting ridiculous tonight? If you have something to say, just spit it out and stop beating around the bush. No one can read your mind!¡± Serenity pushed Zachary. ¡°Get up! Usually, when I touch your face, you always look at me like I¡¯m a pervert. What are you doing now? Who¡¯s taking advantage of whom here?¡± Chapter 209 Chapter 209 Chapter 209 ¨C Zachary grabbed Serenity¡¯s hands and pinned them down next to her head. He swooped in for a kiss to seal her lips shut. The kiss was everything but gentle. He seemed to be venting his anger. Zachary forcibly bit Serenity. Serenity was agitated by his behavior and angrily bit his lips back until he was bleeding. Finally, Zachary let go of her when he felt the pain. While he was dumbstruck, Serenity quickly pushed him to the floor. She sprung up to retreat a few steps before looking at him defensively. Zachary got up slowly and wiped the blood from his lips. His expression was dismal. ¡°Zachary, what the hell is wrong with you? You went crazy after a few sses of wine!¡± Zachary stared at her gloomily. He said coldly, ¡°Serenity, let me ask you again. Were you really at your sister¡¯s house today?¡± ¡°I was at my sister¡¯s house¡­¡± Serenity suddenly stopped mid-sentence. Zachary sneered. ¡°What, you remember now? You and Shawn were eating lunch at Grace¡¯s Diner, talking andughing. This is from N?velDrama.Org. You even served him some dishes. You two look intimate, more like a married couple than the two of us are. Serenity, I told you that you can¡¯t cheat on me during the period of our contracted marriage. You should¡¯ve behaved yourself! ¡°My patience is limited. The next time this happens again, don¡¯t me me for being rude to you!¡± Serenity finally understood. No wonder Zachary went crazy. It turned out that he saw her having lunch with Shawn. Zachary was also of the mind that Serenity wanted Shawn to be her next boyfriend, so he doubted her and wanted to take revenge on her. Usually, Zachary stayed away from Serenity like she was a pervert, but tonight, it turned out that his male ego was acting up. Serenity touched her lips. The spot where he bit her was still hurting ¡°You saw me and Shawn having lunch?¡± Zachary said nothing. ¡°Didn¡¯t you see Jasmine was there too? Why are you being paranoid to assume that about Shawn and I? We grew up together and I have always treated him as a younger brother. What¡¯s wrong with me serving him a few of his favorite dishes? ¡°I¡¯ve known Shawn for more than ten years, so we do talk andugh when we¡¯re together. After all, we¡¯ve been good friends for more than a decade. I grew up with him, and he treats me as a sister, so being with him definitely makes me feel happier and more at ease than I am with you. ¡°And how long have I known you? It¡¯s only been a month. Even if we¡¯re husband and wife, it¡¯s only on paper. How can youpare to him? ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ve told you that I won¡¯t look for another boyfriend. Shawn and I did nothing immoral, and it¡¯s up to you to believe it or not! I don¡¯t need to keep exining myself to you. As you said, as long as I don¡¯t cheat on you, we won¡¯t interfere in each other¡¯s private affairs!¡± After Serenity exined herself, she turned around and left. She did not want to deal with this egomaniac. Zachary interrogated her without rifying and suspected that she cheated on him. He even took revenge on her and kissed her forcibly because of his male ego. After getting along for a month, how did she not notice that he had such a bad side? Even when Zachary was a little grim on his usual days, he was still a polite gentleman. When Serenity encountered difficulties, Zachary would also help her to solve those problems. Zachary exposed his bad side right when Serenity changed her mind about him and considered whether she should try harder to build a rtionship with him as husband and wife. Tonight¡¯s incident would make her rethink her idea. Forget it. She did not want to think about him anymore. They were just a married couple on paper who lived together. When the time was up, they would go their separate ways. Bang! Serenity mmed the door shut, expressing her anger at Zachary. Zachary turned around and saw the ss of honey water. In a fit of rage, he swept the ss of honey water to the floor. The ss shattered. Serenity heard themotion from her room but did not go out to check on him. Chapter 210 Chapter 210 Chapter 210 -Serenity could not care less even if Zachary smashed everything at home since the house belonged to him anyway. He would be the one suffering if his house was wrecked. Zachary swept aside the ss of honey water and went into his room. He then rushed into the bathroom to draw a bath of cold water to sober himself up from the chill. He drank heavily today, but he was notpletely drunk. He was still aware of his actions, but he was easily agitated after drinking too much. Serenity turned off the lights in the hallter to save on the electricity bills. That night, Zachary and Serenity tossed and turned around in bed. Neither of them could sleep because they were mad at each other. Serenity was angry at Zachary for questioning her. Zachary was mad that Serenity was with Shawn. He firmly believed what he saw was the truth. She said that she and Shawn had known each other for more than ten years and that she grew up with Shawn. She and Jasmine were good friends, and Shawn was Jasmine¡¯s cousin, so Zachary believed that she and Shawn had known each other for more than ten years. She also mentioned that she treated Shawn as her younger brother, but Shawn was not her biological brother. Furthermore, Shawn looked at Serenity with such deep affection. Shawn loved her. Was Serenity truly oblivious to it? Or was she feigning ignorance? Zachary was still frustrated. The next day was a Sunday, but Serenity went to the store early in the morning. The store would usually be closed on weekends. Since Serenity and Zachary quarreled, Serenity was in a bad mood and did not want to look at Zachary¡¯s grim and stern face, so she went to the store early. She would rather be making crafts all day in the store than be at home. Sitting in her foul mood, Serenity did not leave breakfast for Zachary. She only cooked her own portion that day. When Zachary woke up with an empty stomach, it was already past ten o¡¯clock in the morning. After getting dressed, Zachary stayed in his room quietly for a long time before he came out. He thought, ¡®This is my house. Why should I be afraid of Serenity?¡¯ When he walked out of the room, he did not see Serenity anywhere. The whole house was quiet. The ss he brokest night was not cleaned up either. The honey water that sshed on the floor attracted a lot of ants too. Zachary had no idea where these many ants came from. They were densely packed all over the puddle of honey water. He first went to the kitchen to have a look, but neither did he see Serenity nor anything to eat. Serenity was not on the balcony either. That was when he knew she went out. Perhaps she went to see Shawn again. Zachary¡¯s expression turned gloomy and cold.This is from N?velDrama.Org. Serenity ignored him, and he would do the same to her. Zachary, who was still livid, brought out a broom to clean up the fragments of the broken ss and killed the pile of ants while he was at it. He then brought out a mop to wipe the floor. After doing all this, Zachary picked up his phone and car keys before heading out the door. As soon as he went out, he called his bodyguards and asked them to wait for him downstairs. ¡°Sir.¡± Seeing Zachary coming downstairs, the bodyguards went over to greet him. Zachary did not speak and went straight to his Rolls-Royce that was parked downstairs. After getting into the car, he instructed in a cold voice, ¡°Send me back to Regent Residences.¡± The driver responded respectfully and swiftly started the car engine. Sitting in the passenger seat, Jim turned to look at his boss. ¡°Speak if you have something to say!¡± Jim said hurriedly, ¡°Sir, the missus went out very early this morning and hasn¡¯t returned since.¡± Zachary looked indifferent and said coldly, ¡°You don¡¯t need to tell me where she goes and what she does in the future!¡± Jim was speechless. Did the boss and his wife get into a fight? Chapter 211 Chapter 211 Chapter 211 ¨C Regent Residences was a high-ss vi neighborhood in Wiltspoon. The residents were either rich or nobles. Before Zachary got his marriage license with Serenity, he lived here almost every day and only asionally returned to the old residence to apany his elders. The vi he lived in used to be made up of several small vis, but he demolished them and rebuilt arge vi when he bought the land. Therge vi had both front and back gardens. Although it was not asrge as the old residence, he lived alone, so it was spacious. Sam knew Zachary wasing back before he had anything to eat, so Sam told the kitchen to prepare lunch in advance. Zachary got upte and had brunch at one go. After he finished eating at a home he was familiar with, his bad mood improved marginally. He sat on the sofa and called Josh. Josh had not woken up yet. Yesterday, Duncan and he went drinking with Zachary. Zachary could hold his liquor, so he was not drunk. On the contrary, Josh got so drunk that he needed the hotel staff to take him home. Duncan¡¯s alcohol tolerance was better than Zachary¡¯s, so he was not the least bit drunk. However, he could not drive since he had alcohol, so he simply stayed in the hotel overnight. Josh¡¯s voice was slightly hoarse when he answered, ¡° Morning, Boss.¡± Zachary was silent for a moment and asked, ¡°It¡¯s not morning anymore. I just finished lunch.¡± Josh was speechless. He moved the phone away from his ear and looked at the time. It was indeed already noon. It was no wonder his boss called him to wake him up. He felt a stomachache, but fortunately, his head was not hurting. Otherwise, he would stay in bed all day. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡± ¡°Do you have ns this afternoon?¡± Josh shot up straight and once again moved the phone away from his ear. When he affirmed that the person he was talking to was indeed his boss and buddy, Zachary, heughed and asked, ¡°The sun must have risen from the west today. Did you just ask me if Ihad ns? What? Don¡¯t you need to apany your wife on Sundays?¡± Zachary¡¯s expression darkened, but Josh could not see it. Naturally, Zachary would not tell him about the fight he had with his wife. He said infant tone, ¡°She always goes to her sister¡¯s ce to look after her nephew whenever she¡¯s free. Either that, or she goes shopping with her friends. She doesn¡¯t need me to apany her.¡± Josh remembered how Serenity and her sister were dependent on each other, so he did not doubt Zachary. ¡°I¡¯ll call Duncan to ask if he has ns and get back to you.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Zachary did not want to be alone. If he was, he would think about what happened last night. He thought, ¡®That could be considered a quarrel, right? We¡¯re also ignoring each other today.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Is this a cold war?¡¯ Duncan proposed golfing and off the trio went. I Serenity knitted her crafts in the store and did not go home all day. She even had all her meals in the store. When it was eight in the evening, she closed up the shop and rode home on her e bike. She took the maneki-neko and the golden dragon she promised to give to Zachary. He was angry because she gave Elisa a maneki-neko before she gave it to him, so she gave him an additional dragon to appease him. Bringing the maneki- neko back home to him did not mean she was bowing to him. She simply felt that since she had already promised him, she had to give it to him quickly as she did not want to owe him. The house was empty when she returned. There was no figure in sight. I Serenity ced the maneki-neko and the dragon on the I coffee table before going out on the balcony to water the flowers and nts. Then, she sat on the swing and quietly looked out at the night scenery. Chapter 212 Chapter 212 Chapter 212 ¨C As Serenity viewed the night sky, she gradually grew tired. She leaned back on the swing and thought of napping for a few minutes. Little did she know, she slept until five in the morning. It was almost dawn when she woke up. She had slept outside on the balcony the whole night. When she woke up, she knew Zachary had not returnedst night. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Otherwise, he would have woken her up. Although that man was cold and seemed to have a heart made of stone, he was kind to her. He gave her everything that she should have as his wife. Serenity got up from the swing and went into the hall to turn on the lights. The two handicrafts were still on the coffee table. She was silent for a moment before she went to Zachary¡¯s room. The door was locked. She did not have the keys, so she could not open the door. He most likely did note home. It was Monday, a new week. Although Zachary did not return during the night, Serenity did not call him. He was still angry at her, so why should she approach him just to be rebuffed? Besides, she believed he would not answer the phone even if she called. Since Zachary was not home, Serenity did not have breakfast at home either. As the sun rose, she took the car keys and went downstairs, intending to eat a casual breakfast before fetching Sonny from Liberty¡¯s ce since Liberty would be job hunting today as well. When Serenity arrived at the parking lot downstairs, she saw Zachary¡¯s national MPV. She stopped and stared at the car. ¡®I remember that license te. It¡¯s Zachary¡¯s car. Did he not drive out?¡¯ After a long while, she took out her phone to send him a message. Serenity: [Are you going to work today? I saw your car was still parked downstairs. ] After sending the message, she lifted her foot and walked toward another car. Soon, she drove off. When she arrived at Liberty¡¯s house, she was surprised to see that her brother-inw, Hank, was back. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re here.¡± Hank took the initiative to greet his sister-inw. Serenity was stunned, but she greeted him back and asked, ¡°Are Liberty and Sonny awake yet?¡± ¡°Your sister is preparing breakfast in the kitchen. Sonny isn¡¯t up yet.¡± Serenity felt that Hank was rather polite to her upon his return. However, she never had anything to say to him, so she went straight into the kitchen. Hank went outside to the balcony for a smoke. In fact, he was avoiding his wife and sister-inw so he could send a message to Jessica. Hank: [Babe, don¡¯t eat breakfast yet. I¡¯ll go to Wilt spoon Hotel to buy a delicious breakfast for youter. It¡¯s better than the roadside stalls you usually eat at.] Jessica: (Thanks, honey. In that case, I¡¯]l wait at the office for the delicious and loving breakfast you¡¯re buying for me.] Hank sent her a kiss emoji. Jessica: [Have you gone home?] Hank: [Yeah. I bought this house and paid the mortgage. The house is mine. Why can¡¯t I live here?] Jessica: [Is your wife¡¯s name written on the title deed of the house? ] Hank: [No, I bought the house before getting married and didn¡¯t add her name. I¡¯!] add your name to it when we¡¯ re together in the future. } He waspletely devoted to Jessica. Jessica smiled happily. ¡®I know where Hank lives. The real estate there is costly. His house is worth several million, but he¡¯s willing to add my name to the deed. This is true love, right?¡¯ Soon, she asked him another question. Jessica: [Hank, did you make up with your wife when you got home? Did she apologize to you?] Chapter 213 Chapter 213 Chapter 213 ¨C Hank turned his head to look in the house. He returned by himselfst night. He only made his way back home because he was persuaded by his parents and sister. Otherwise, he would have chosen to stay at his parents¡¯ house for a few more days and go out with Jessica unscrupulously. Liberty would usually not go to her inws¡¯ house since she would be nitpicked by her mother-inw and sister-in w. She grew annoyed after so many times, so she refused to visit her inws unless absolutely necessary. That was the only reason Hank was audacious to shamelessly go out with Jessica. During the few days he took leaves of absence to recuperate at home, Jessica woulde over to take care of him when she got off work. She bought him plenty of supplements and delicious food, and their rtionship improved by leaps and bounds. If Jessica were to insist on him divorcing Liberty because she wanted to be with him officially, they would have rolled around in the sheets already. Although Hank did not manage to et Jessica up, that only _made him feel that she was better. The things he could not obtain would always be the best. Jessica knew that very well. Even though she and Hank were intimate like husband and wife, she kept thest line of defense because she did not want to let him have her. Hank: [She apologized to me and promised not to hit me anymore. ) He lied. In truth, the couple slept in separate rooms when he returned home yesterday. It was not because Liberty chased him out, but because he was feeling guilty and afraid. He was worried he would be chopped into a hundred pieces if he fell asleep. Liberty did not apologize to him either. Instead, she warned him that if he dared get violent with her again, she would chase him down a few blocks with a kitchen knife so he would lose all his dignity. Hank was genuinely frightened by how tough Liberty was. Beforeing back, his parents reminded him that Liberty would fight back fiercely, so he should not hit her in the future. That was because no one knew who would emerge victorious in a fight between a husband and wife. Jessica smiled. ¡®Liberty really is a wretch. She was beaten by her husband, yet she apologized to him. ¡®She must still have deep feelings for Hank. Furthermore, she doesn¡¯t have a job and ispletely dependent on Hank for support. ¡®Who knew that the Liberty Hunt who everyone in thepany once praised as being an exceptional woman would end up like this one day?¡± Jessica thought of how Hank waspletely devoted and submissive to her. e often gave her gifts to make her happy, but the living expenses he gave Liberty went from three thousand to one thousand five hundred ever since the couple decided to split costs. Jessica knew how much Hank earned. He had such high ie. He only gave his wife one thousand five hundred for living expenses, but he was so generous to Jessica. This greatly satisfied Jessica¡¯s vanity. Hank: {I¡¯ll see you at the office, babe. } Hank heard his son¡¯s cries and ended his chat with Jessica. He put out the cigarette and entered from the balcony. He then said to his wife who had just walked out of the kitchen, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Liberty. I¡¯ll go get Sonny. ¡± Liberty did not refute and let him go to the room to take Sonny. After Hank clumsily changed his son¡¯s clothes, he carried Sonny out and said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, go prepare the milk form. I don¡¯t know how to do it. ¡± He had no idea how much water or milk powder to mix. Serenity came out from the kitchen. ¡°I¡¯ll go. ¡± ¡°Ant Swer. ¡± | As soon as Sonny saw Serenity, he reached out to her, wanting her to carry him. Serenity had no choice but to take him. Hank was a little embarrassed. He felt as if his son thought Serenity was better than him. Serenity carried her nephew into the room to prepare the milk form, Hank seemed to have nothing to do. He could not stay at home, so he said to his wile, who was still busy in the kitchen, ¡° Liberty, £¤¡¯m poling to work. The traffic is usually the worst on Mondays. This is from N?velDrama.Org. l eave Carly so don¡¯t get caught in one,¡± Chapter 214 Chapter 214 Chapter 214 ¨C Liberty asked, ¡°Why don¡¯t you go after breakfast?¡± ¡°No, I¡¯ll just get take-outs. I have an appointment at noon and won¡¯t be back for lunch. You can eat with Sonny. ¡± Seeing how Liberty was merely asking and did not hand him his coat and briefcase like before to send him off like a king, Hank was quite upset. He felt like Liberty was not serving him despite eating and living under his roof. His sister was good to her husband. It could be said that she treated her husband like he was a king. Furthermore, she had a job to earn money ¡®Liberty doesn¡¯t do anything get she doesn¡¯t treat me well either. ¡®No one can me me for not loving her. She¡¯s just not qualified. ¡¯ Hank found a reason for his emotional infidelity. He went to get his suit jacket, briefcase, and car keys before saying to his son, ¡°Daddy is going to work now, Sonny. Bye- bye. ¡± He did not leave until his son waved at him. As soon as he left the house, he drove straight to Wiltspoon Hotel. Unexpectedly, Jessica was waiting for him there. ¡°Mr.Brown. ¡± Jessica wore a professional suit. Although she was young, she looked smart andpetent. With delicate makeup, she looked several times prettier than the current Liberty. ¡°Why are you here? Didn¡¯t I tell you that I¡¯d buy breakfast for you? Call me Hank when we¡¯re outside. I like it when you call me by my name. ¡± Hank got out of the car and walked toward his young lover. He reached out and took her by the shoulders, embracing her as they went into the hotel. ¡°Since you¡¯re here, let¡¯s eat at the hotel before going back to the office. ¡± Jessica smiled charmingly. ¡°I wanted to eat with you, so I rushed over to wait for you here. Are you surprised?¡± ¡°Yep,¡± Then, he kissed Jessica¡¯s cheek. She blushed and pushed him away, whispering, ¡°Behave. We¡¯re in public. If someone sees us and tells your wife, I¡¯ll be the disgraceful third party. Hank, you say that you love me.C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Can you bear to let me be a mistress?¡± Her goal was to be Hank¡¯s legal wife and rece Liberty as thedy of the house. ¡°Her family condition was not doing well, and Hank was the most exceptional man she knew. Her parents knew about their rtionship, but she lied to her parents and told them that Hank was single. Her parents knew that Hank had a high sry and told her to hold onto him. They told her to marry him quickly, lest he was snatched away by other women. Hank kissed her again andforted her. ¡°How could I bear to let you suffer, my precious darling? Don¡¯t worry, Ill divorce Liberty. I¡¯ll divorce her immediately when my son starts preschool next year. ¡± Jessica pouted her red lips. ¡°I have to wait till next year? Why don¡¯t I anonymously send some ambiguous photos to your wife and make her argue with you, then you can take advantage of the situation to divorce her. But Hank, you can¡¯t divide the property with her. Make sure she leaves without a penny to her name!¡± Aficio¡¯s light shed in Jessica¡¯s eyes as she spoke. Since she was the mistress, she was sure to go against the legal wife. She simply did not want Liberty to have a good time. Liberty had no means of ie. Once she was forced to leave without a penny to her name, she would be even more miserable. What Jessica hated the most was how even after Liberty left thepany for many years, the old employees in thepany always sang praises about her. Jessica wanted to make Liberty¡¯s life as wretched as possible! Chapter 215 Chapter 215 Chapter 215 ¨C ¡°After marriage, she didn¡¯t go to work and had no ie, so she relied on me to support her. Everything in the house was bought with my money. What qualifications does she have to split the assets with me?¡± Hank said arrogantly. ¡°As long as I divorce her, she¡¯ll definitely leave without a penny to her name. She won¡¯t get anything from me. ¡± Previously, Liberty told him that if they divorced, she wanted the money used for renovation back from him. However, Hank told her that he would not give her a single penny. He had not divorced her because his son was still young and needed someone to take care of him. This is from N?velDrama.Org. He simply thought of Liberty as a free nanny. This free nanny was absolutely dedicated to taking care of his son, so he did not have to worry about his son being abused by a random nanny. Jessica wanted to tell him that his savings were considered marital property. If Liberty sued him, she would be able to take half of the savings. Furthermore, if Liberty found out about the money that Hank had been spending on Jessica, ¡®she could sue for that as well, and Jessica would have to return the money and items to Liberty. Hank was a manager now and was well-connected in the workce. If he actually divorced Liberty in the future, she would not be able to beat him. Thus, Jessica did not speak OO e¡ªSSCSC¡®C¡®C¨¦s her thoughts, lest Hank thought she was only after his money. Jessica was somewhat sincere to Hank. There were many executives in thepany, but Hank was the youngest. He was only in his early thirties and took care of himself. Every day, he wore a suit and looked mature, calm, and handsome. Of course, the most important thing was that he had a high ie. Her brother said that Hank¡¯s monthly sry was as much as his annual ie. As long as she married Hank, she would be considered the person with the best spouse in the area her family lived in. At that moment, the hotel¡¯s security guards quickly ushered them to the side. Then, they saw a procession of tall men in ck suits surrounding a maning out of the hotel. The tall men blocked the sight of many people, and there were also bodyguards who opened up a path. Everyone knew that a big shot wasing out in the middle of the hotel, but only a few could clearly see who the man was. Hank and Jessica were also led aside by the guards. Before they could understand what was going on, the ck-d bodyguards had already stood in two files, allowing the man to walk out of the hotel. Hank was unsure if his eyes were ying tricks on him, but as he looked at the ck- d man walking out from afar, he felt the figure looked rather familiar. Unfortunately, he could not see the man clearly. There were too many a , bodyguards who were protecting the man, so Hank was only able to catch a glimpse of him before he went away. ¡®Who was that? ¡®I feel like he¡¯s a little familiar. I¡¯ve definitely seen him before. ¡¯ Hank searched in his mind, but he did not manage to recall who that man was. ¡°Who was that? What a big entrance. That was so cool!¡± Jessica¡¯s face was full of wonder. She was curious about the man who was escorted in the middle. The bodyguards were all tall and powerful. All of them wore suits with serious and cold expressions and they were quite handsome too. Jessica felt as if she had just seen a male beauty pageant. Hank also wanted to know who the man was. A middle-aged man suddenly spoke to them. ¡°Where do you think you are now? This is Wilt spoon Hotel, which is owned by York Corporation. Mr.York oftenes here to eat. The man who just went out is Mr.York himself. In Wilt spoon, Mr.York is the only one who can make such a big exit. ¡± Mr.York¡¯s extravagance was mainly to prevent love-struck fools from approaching him. He did not allow young women to appear within three meters of him. That part of him was simr to Mr.Lafayette from Meadspring. Chapter 216 Chapter 216 Chapter 216 ¨C When Hank heard that it was Mr.York, he was stunned and said, ¡®No wonder it was such a bigmotion. So, it was Mr.York. Oh, what a shame. If I had known that it was him, I would¡¯ve squeezed to the front to get a glimpse of his handsome face. ¡± He heard that Mr.York was incredibly good-looking. The middle-aged man gave Hank a sidelong nce andughed. ¡°You don¡¯t look too shabby either, butpared to Mr.York, you can¡¯t hold a candle to him. ¡± Hank did not get angry either. ¡°How would I dare topare myself with Mr.York? The only one who canpare to him is probably Mr.Stone. I¡¯m quite lucky to have encountered Mr.York today. I¡¯ll buy a lottery ticketter and see if I can hit the jackpot. ¡± The middle-aged man was amused by Hank¡¯s words. Jessica looked amazed. After the middle-aged man left, she took Hank¡¯s arm and walked to the hotel restaurant, saying, ¡°Mr.York is a god-like figure in Wilt spoon. I wonder what kind of man he is and the luckydy to have his heart. ¡± The York family was the richest family in Wilt spoon, and Mr.York was the head of this generation. He was in charge of the massive York Corporation and even had his own private business. He was definitely a highly desirable partner. Rumor had it that Mr.York still did not have a girlinena. There were not many rumors about women who adore¡¯ on him either, perhaps because ordinary people could not ev see Mr.York in the flesh. Since no one could see him, no one would be infatuated or fall in love with him. Oh, there was one person who waspletely smitten with Mr.York, and that was Elisa Stone, the darling daughter of the Stone family. Elisa not only openly confessed to Mr.York, but also enthusiastically chased after him. Jessica thought, WFP I had Elisa¡¯s background and confidence, I would also chase after Mr.York. ¡¯ ( felt that Mr.York¡¯s figure looked a little familiar earlier. This is from N?velDrama.Org. I just can¡¯t figure out where I saw him before,¡± Hank voiced his thoughts. Jessica did not want to burst his bubble, but she had to tell him the truth. She said, ¡°There¡¯s no way you¡¯ve seen Mr. York before. York Corporation isn¡¯t one of our clients. Even if they were, people on our level won¡¯t be able to meet him. Besides, ourpany is apetitor toga branchpany of York Corporation. ¡± It was impossible for them to work together for the time being, unless theirpany changed their industry and stoppedpeting with York Corporation¡¯s branchpany for business. Hank knew that with his status, he could not even meet Mr. York¡¯s administrative executive, Mr.Bucham, let alone Mr.mamas saa cammmmammmmmaaaal York himself. It was said even among the staff of York Corporation, not even those who had worked there for years had seen Mr.York¡¯s true face. ¡°T just think that his figure looks a little familiar. ¡± ¡®Mr.York¡­ Zachary York? ¡®Isn¡¯t Serenity¡¯s husband¡¯sst name York?¡¯ However, Hank quickly dismissed the idea. When they first met, he asked Zachary what rtionship thetter had with the York family, but Zachary said that their families were rtives five hundred years ago. In other words, he had nothing to do with Mr.York. Furthermore, Mr.York was the young master of the York family. How could he marry Serenity? Besides, Zachary drove a national MPV worth only at most a hundred thirty thousand. It did not match Mr.York¡¯s identity at all. Chapter 217 Chapter 217 Chapter 217 ¨C Hank thought of the York family, and then his mind shifted to his sister-inw¡¯s conditions. He felt like pigs would fly before Zachary was Mr.York.Serenity was indeed beautiful, but all her other aspects were far inferior to the Stone family¡¯s daughter. If Mr.York did not take a liking to someone like Elisa, why would he fancy Serenity instead? After makingparisons, Hank automatically dismissed the idea, feeling that he was overthinking. There was no way the Zachary he knew was the young master of the York family! . ¡°My eyes must be ying tricks on me. Come on, let¡¯s go have breakfast. ¡± Jessica was hoping that Hank could get acquainted with Mr.York. That way, if she followed Hank, she would be able to take advantage of that rtionship to get to know Mr.York as well. Maybe she could even squeeze into that circle of high society. However, reality gave her a tight p in the face. That was impossible! She had better not daydream. Seizing Hank¡¯s heart and making him divorce Liberty to marry her was already the best ending. Jessica stopped thinking about anything else. ee ee eee ee ee ee ee Zachary did not see Hank, but Jim did. Fortunately, Hank did not know the bodyguards around Zachary, but the bodyguards had to be familiar with the faces of the people around the missus. Thus, Jim recognized Hank. After getting into the car, he said to his boss, ¡°Mr.Zachary, I think I just saw Missus¡¯s brother-inw in front of the hotel. I only caught a glimpse of him, so I can¡¯t be sure if it was really him, but the woman beside him wasn¡¯t Missus¡¯s sister. However, it¡¯s also possible that I was mistaken. ¡± That man was Missus¡¯s brother-inw. What Jim saw was the cruelest thing that could happen to a married woman, her husband having an affair! Zachary did not speak immediately. He was silent for a while before saying in a low voice, ¡°I told you, her affairs have nothing to do with me. ¡± Jim opened his mouth, wanting to say something but had no idea what to say either. It was clear that Mr.Zachary and Missus were at odds. They seemed to be having a cold war. Missus did not take the initiative to call Mr.Zachary, and Mr.Zachary did not go back to stay in Bryn field. However, the bodyguards did not know why the couple was fighting, so they were helpless. Zachary fell into silence after he had spoken. Jim turned his head and peeked twice at Zachary, to see him staring at his phone and looking at something. It was a message sent to him by Serenity. She saw his national MPV that he used to lie to her about being poor parked downstairs and asked if he was not working today. Zachary was in a dilemma. ¡®Should I reply? ¡®I spent the night at my own vist night. ¡®I didn¡¯t go back to Brynfield. ¡®I thought she would ask about it. Even if she didn¡¯t call, I thought she would send a message at least, so I waited untilte at night. My phone did end up ringing a few times, but it was never from her. ¡¯ , Zachary¡¯s pride stopped him from bowing to her. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Since she did not care about him, he would not care about her either. His fingers moved, not to reply to her message, but to delete it instead. He also deleted her number from his contact list. Serenity never received a reply after sending Zachary that message, so she knew he was still angry. He was mad because he did not believe that she and Shawn were innocent. She also did not send him any more messages. After Sonny had finished eating, she carried him and went out with her sister Chapter 218 Chapter 218 Chapter 217 ¨C Hank thought of the York family, and then his mind shifted to his sister-inw¡¯s conditions. He felt like pigs would fly before Zachary was Mr.York. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Serenity was indeed beautiful, but all her other aspects were far inferior to the Stone family¡¯s daughter. If Mr.York did not take a liking to someone like Elisa, why would he fancy Serenity instead? After makingparisons, Hank automatically dismissed the idea, feeling that he was overthinking. There was no way the Zachary he knew was the young master of the York family! . ¡°My eyes must be ying tricks on me. Come on, let¡¯s go have breakfast. ¡± Jessica was hoping that Hank could get acquainted with Mr.York. That way, if she followed Hank, she would be able to take advantage of that rtionship to get to know Mr.York as well. Maybe she could even squeeze into that circle of high society. However, reality gave her a tight p in the face. That was impossible! She had better not daydream. Seizing Hank¡¯s heart and making him divorce Liberty to marry her was already the best ending. Jessica stopped thinking about anything else. ee ee eee ee ee ee ee Zachary did not see Hank, but Jim did. Fortunately, Hank did not know the bodyguards around Zachary, but the bodyguards had to be familiar with the faces of the people around the missus. Thus, Jim recognized Hank. After getting into the car, he said to his boss, ¡°Mr.Zachary, I think I just saw Missus¡¯s brother-inw in front of the hotel. I only caught a glimpse of him, so I can¡¯t be sure if it was really him, but the woman beside him wasn¡¯t Missus¡¯s sister. However, it¡¯s also possible that I was mistaken. ¡± That man was Missus¡¯s brother-inw. What Jim saw was the cruelest thing that could happen to a married woman, her husband having an affair! Zachary did not speak immediately. He was silent for a while before saying in a low voice, ¡°I told you, her affairs have nothing to do with me. ¡± Jim opened his mouth, wanting to say something but had no idea what to say either. It was clear that Mr.Zachary and Missus were at odds. They seemed to be having a cold war. Missus did not take the initiative to call Mr.Zachary, and Mr.Zachary did not go back to stay in Bryn field. However, the bodyguards did not know why the couple was fighting, so they were helpless. Zachary fell into silence after he had spoken. Jim turned his head and peeked twice at Zachary, to see him staring at his phone and looking at something. It was a message sent to him by Serenity. She saw his national MPV that he used to lie to her about being poor parked downstairs and asked if he was not working today. Zachary was in a dilemma. ¡®Should I reply? ¡®I spent the night at my own vist night. ¡®I didn¡¯t go back to Brynfield. ¡®I thought she would ask about it. Even if she didn¡¯t call, I thought she would send a message at least, so I waited untilte at night. My phone did end up ringing a few times, but it was never from her. ¡¯ , Zachary¡¯s pride stopped him from bowing to her. Since she did not care about him, he would not care about her either. His fingers moved, not to reply to her message, but to delete it instead. He also deleted her number from his contact list. Serenity never received a reply after sending Zachary that message, so she knew he was still angry. He was mad because he did not believe that she and Shawn were innocent. She also did not send him any more messages. After Sonny had finished eating, she carried him and went out with her sister Chapter 219 Chapter 219 Chapter 219 ¨C ¡°Maybe he hasn¡¯t seen your message. Why don¡¯t you send him another one?¡± Serenity was silent for a moment. Then, she picked up her phone, tapped on WhatsApp, and sent another message to Zachary. Serenity: [Do you want to have lunch together?) When she sent the message, she received a system notification stating that Zachary had not added her as contact and could not receive her message. There was a prompt for her to add him as a friend. Serenity stared at the few lines of words. ¡®We¡¯re not friends? ¡®That cheapskate actually deleted my contact again! ¡®This is the second time he deleted me! ¡®The first time was when we first got our license. He turned around and forgot about me, his new wife, for nine days so he deleted me. However, I could understand because we weren¡¯t close to each other back then. ¡®Now that he deleted me again, it means that he¡¯s convinced that I did him wrong. He¡¯spletely set on the idea that I found a backup partner, so he deleted my contact. ) At first, Serenity thought of giving in and reaching out to ee eee ee eee ee ee him. They could solve any problems face to face. However, this was what Zachary did instead. Serenity was simply furious. ¡®Haven¡¯t even blocked him yet, but he deleted me first. ¡®Fine then. Sobeit! In a rage, she also deleted Zachary from her contact list. She also blocked his number. She was livid! ¡°Seren, you don¡¯t look too good. Did Mr. York reply?¡± Serenity stuffed her phone back into the pocket of her trousers and said coldly, ¡°Ignore him. Just cook for the both of us. It¡¯s his business whether he eats or not. He won¡¯t starve anyway. ¡± Jasmine looked at her. Serenity exined grumpily, ¡°He deleted me on WhatsApp, so I deleted him too and blocked his number in a fit of anger. Don¡¯t mention him in front of me in the future. Jas, you¡¯d better find a reliable man and date him for a few years before getting married. Don¡¯t be like me. I married a drama king who gets offended at anything I do despite my best efforts. ¡± Jasmine was speechless. Serenity got up and walked around the checkout counter, then picked up her nephew and said to her friend, ¡°I¡¯m not in a good mood. I¡¯ll take Sonny to the mall and swipe the _ card he gave me for living expenses until it maxes out!¡± Jasmine nodded quickly. ¡°Go ahead, Pll cook. ¡± Serenity carried Sonny out of the shop. After putting her nephew in the car, she drove off. She deliberately chose thergest shopping mall in the city. When she went in, she chose the most expensive things to buy. Her shopping cart was already piled high before she finished going through the mall. She wanted to grab another cart to continue splurging, but when she considered that she could not carry so many things while bringing a baby with her, she finally gave up. Even so, the line of numbers disyed on the register almost made her want to return all the goods. However, when she remembered how Zachary deleted her contact, she gritted her teeth and swiped the card. Since the card she used was one that Zachary gave her for home expenses, his phone would receive a notification of the expenditure. Zachary was in a meeting. There were many people in the conference room, but everyone¡¯s phone was muted. Only Zachary¡¯s phone could ring. When he received the notification, he picked up the phone from the desk and tapped on the message to look at it. Josh, who was the closest to him, noticed his boss¡¯s sharp eyebrows rise. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. However, his expression was still unchanged. He put down the phone and continued the meeting. Serenity had just spent a few thousand dors. The amount was less than five figures, so he did not even bother to However, in his heart, he could not help but wonder what she bought to have spent a few thousand at once. That amount was chump change to Zachary. Chapter 220 Chapter 220 Chapter 220 ¨C Serenity had been careful in spending money. Unless she was buyingrge pieces of furniture, she would spend no more than two hundred dors a day. As time passed, Zachary did not bother to guess. Since he had given her the money, she was free to spend it. He was angry at her and deleted her from his WhatsApp, but he did not want to take back the money he gave her to spend. Anyhow, he would bear with her until the agreement expired. He would not breach the contract prematurely, since he would have topensate her with arge number of liquidated damages. Ten minutester, his phone received another expenditure notification. This time, the total was more than twenty thousand. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Of course, this bit of money was nothing for Mr. York. He just wanted to know why the woman was suddenly spending so much money. Was she buying gold? Or did she get angry after she found out that he deleted her, so she deliberately went shopping to spend his money? Sure enough, Zachary was good at guessing. He was right. There were still ten minutes before the office hours were over, but the meeting hade to an end, so Zachary simply adjourned. In the past, he was always the first to leave the conference room after the meeting. The senior management would then follow him out. This time, Zachary sat in his seat, looking at something on his cell phone. He did not take the lead in leaving the conference room this time. The others looked at each other. No one dared to be the first to stand up and leave. After a while, Zachary finally noticed something was off. He looked up and asked in a low voice, ¡°Don¡¯t you want to get off work?¡± The others thought, ¡®We do, but we don¡¯t dare to move. ¡¯ In the end, it was Cullum who took the lead to leave the room. Cullum was the second to Zachary in the York family. Since he had taken the lead, the senior management grew bold enough to hurry out of the conference room one after another. Josh did not leave. Since he was Zachary¡¯s administrative executive, he was seated the closest to Zachary in every meeting. The others might not notice Zachary¡¯s change, but he did. When they were the only ones left in the conference room, he asked with concern, ¡°Boss, what¡¯s wrong with you? ¡± Zachary put down his phone again and leaned back. He stared at Josh for a long time before saying, ¡°I fought with Serenity. ¡± ¡°Why?¡± Before Zachary could answer, Josh continued, ¡°1 felt something was up with you. Your mood changed after lunch on Saturday. Are you finally admitting that you fought with Serenity? Tell me the reason and I¡¯ll try to analyze it for you. ¡± ¡°What¡¯s there to analyze? I saw her eating with another man with my own eyes. I saw her smiling and giving that man food. Even if I¡¯m only her husband in name, she doesn¡¯t even treat me that well. ¡± Josh asked, ¡°She¡¯s having an affair?¡± ¡°Tt¡¯s an emotional affair. ¡± Josh opened his mouth to say something, but for a moment, he did not know what to say tofort his boss and best friend. Whether it was a man or a woman, they would be furious if they found out that their significant other was cheating on them. It was natural to act impulsively. Zachary was a prideful person. He was used to being high above and dominating everything. More than that, he was used to everyone bowing to him. Now that Serenity betrayed him, even if it was just an emotional affair, it was a great blow to Zachary. The main point was that Zachary¡¯s ego could not take it! Chapter 221 Chapter 221 Chapter 221 ¨C ¡°Wait, even if you saw Serenity eating with another man and giving him food, who was he? Did you check properly? What if he¡¯s a rtive?¡± Zachary¡¯s face was gloomy. ¡°Shawn Lowe. ¡± ¡°Who¡¯s Shawn? Oh, know. He¡¯s the son of Mr. Lowe from Lowe Enterprise. He¡¯s working in Lowe Enterprise now to build experience¡­ Let me think. The maiden name of Shawn¡¯s mother is Sox, and your wife¡¯s best friend¡¯sst name is also Sox. ¡± Zachary said directly, ¡°Shawn is Jasmine Sox¡¯s cousin. ¡± ¡°Yes yes yes, they¡¯re cousins. Serenity and Jasmine are best friends, so she must have known Shawn for a long time. She¡¯s a few years older than Shawn, right? Maybe she just thinks of him as a younger brother. ¡± ¡°They don¡¯t have any blood rtion at all. Even if she thinks of him as a brother, he¡¯s not her brother!¡± Josh choked. ¡®Yeah, even if she says she only thinks of him as a brother, they¡¯re not connected by blood, so there¡¯s no way he can be her brother. ¡¯ After amoment of silence, Zachary said, ¡°Shawn is secretly in love with Serenity. ¡± Josh asked, ¡°How do you know?¡± ¡°I¡¯m Aman. y intuition tells me that Shawn likes Serenity, and it¡¯s not a crush that he has had for just a few days. ¡± a him. They could solve any problems face to face. However, this was what Zachary did instead. Serenity was simply furious. ¡®Haven¡¯t even blocked him yet, but he deleted me first. ¡®Fine then. Sobeit!? _ Ina rage, she also deleted Zachary from her contact list. She also blocked his number. the was livid! ¡°Seren, you don¡¯t look too good. Did Mr. York reply?¡± Serenity stuffed her phone back into the pocket of her trousers and said coldly, ¡°Ignore him. Just cook for the both of us. It¡¯s his business whether he eats or not. He won¡¯t starve anyway. ¡± Jasmine looked at her. Serenity exined grumpily, ¡°He deleted me on WhatsApp, so I deleted him too and blocked his number in a fit of anger. Don¡¯t mention him in front of me in the future. Jas, you¡¯d better find a reliable man and date him for a few years before getting married. Don¡¯t be like me. I married a drama king who gets offended at anything I do despite my best efforts. ¡± Jasmine was speechless. Serenity got up and walked around the checkout counter, then picked up her nephew and said to her friend, ¡°I¡¯m not in a good mood. I¡¯ll take Sonny to the mall and swipe the card he gave me for living expenses until it maxes out!¡± ¡®She easily took down THE Zachary York and made his heart flutter. ¡¯ Zachary¡¯s expression was dark. He picked up his phone, got up, and walked away. When he walked to the door of the conference room, he turned his head and said coldly, ¡°I¡¯ll never get jealous!¡± Joshughed. ¡®There¡¯s no way I¡¯d believe that! ¡®You¡¯re clearly jealous. I can see it written all over your face. ¡®You¡¯re just stubborn and refuse to admit it. ¡¯ Of course, Josh also understood why Zachary was not willing to admit that he was jealous. After all, Zachary and Serenity got married out of convenience. He did it to return a favor to his grandmother. He was haughty and had high expectations. He was not the kind to be easily moved. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. It was tough for him to admit that he had started to care for Serenity in just a month¡¯s time. He could not put aside his ego. His damned pride and arrogance were preventing him from admitting it. After Zachary came out of the conference room, he did not immediately leave the building but went back to his office instead. His mood improved slightly after chatting with his friend. In his heart, he also understood that he was unreasonable for assuming Serenity was cheating on him just because she ate with Shawn and gave him food. ¡¯ However, he still felt inexplicably angry Chapter 222 Chapter 222 Chapter 222 ¨C ¡®Could Josh be right? Am I really jealous? ¡®How can that be?¡¯ Zachary sat down in the ck swivel chair and took out his phone again. He was lost in thoughts for a long time. Then, he decided to put his ego aside and reply to Serenity¡¯s message. When he opened WhatsApp, he recalled that he deleted her from his contacts. Fortunately, he still remembered her phone number. After another few moments of deliberation, he finally mustered the courage to call her. ¡°Sorry, the number you have dialed is not avable. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡®Did Serenity turn off her phone? ¡®Or did she block me?¡¯ He immediately used thendline to call her. It rang, but he hung up before she could answer. That was because he was now sure that she blocked his cell phone number. Zachary, who put down his ego and wanted to mend his rtionship with his wife, was immediately sent back to square one after Serenity blocked his number. ¡®I deleted her first, and she blocked me in return. Fine, we¡¯re even. ¡®Let¡¯s leave it at that. ¡¯ ¨C Zachary did not try to contact Serenity again. This is from N?velDrama.Org. He got up, walked out of the office, and left the building while surrounded by his bodyguards. He went to Wiltspoon Hotel for dinner. As for the littledy who went on retail therapy to soothe her anger, she went to a shop selling gold and spent another tens of thousands before her wrath was extinguished. Back at the bookstore, Liberty had already returned from job hunting. From her expression, Serenity knew that today was not a sessful day either. Serenity did not dare to bring out the tens of thousands worth of goods she bought lest her sister saw them and scolded her, so she left them in the car. Jasmine was also not a talkative person. Without Serenity¡¯s consent, she did not tell Liberty about the young couple¡¯s misunderstanding and the cold war. When Liberty saw her sister getting out of the car with her son, but her brother-inw was nowhere to be seen, she asked casually, ¡°I thought you went to pick Zachary up for lunch together. ¡± ¡°T went to his office, but he¡¯s not free this afternoon. He¡¯s having lunch with a client,¡± Serenity lied. Liberty did not suspect her at all. After the meal, Liberty took a short break in the store before continuing to look for jobs in the afternoon. Serenity, who had spent tens of thousands of Zachary¡¯s money, was also in a calmer mood. She remembered that when she got the marriage license, she was just looking for someone to live with. The couple did not love each other, so why should she care what he thought of her? As long as he did not file for divorce, they would just go on living without getting in each other¡¯s way. After figuring that out, Serenity¡¯s mood improved enough to continue making her crafts. In the evening, after Liberty had dinner at the store with Sonny, she politely refused to be seen off by Serenity and took a ride home by themselves. Jasmine had to go out in the evening, so Serenity had to watch the store. Since Liberty insisted not to be seen off, Serenity called a taxi for her sister and watched the mother and son get into the car. Then, she went back to the store to keep watch. When it was eleven at night, she closed the shop as usual and went home. She had just driven away from the entrance of Wilt spoon School and entered the main road when she almost hit a Land Rover. She was caught by surprise and that caused her to m on the brakes urgently to avoid crashing into it. After the Land Rover drove past, she continued driving. This scene was witnessed by Zachary, who was slowly following from behind. He was currently sitting in his car. Serenity felt that the car was familiar and thought it was the same Rolls-Royce from her neighborhood. Serenity¡¯s car was bought for her by Zachary. He had a good memory and could naturally recognize his wife¡¯s car. However, he did not say anything and simply instructed the driver, ¡°Slow down. Don¡¯t overtake the car in front. ¡± The driver did not know the reason, but Jim did. He exined to the driver in a soft voice, ¡°The car in front belongs to the Missus. Chapter 223 Chapter 223 Chapter 223 ¨C The driver turned his head to look at Zachary in the backseat. When he saw Zachary¡¯s cold expression, he quickly turned his head around and eyes back on the road. He was careful with the speed of the car, following the missus¡¯ car from a decent distance. Jim thought of the most important question and turned to ask Zachary, ¡°Mr. Zachary, where are you returning tonight?¡± ¡®Mr. Zachary stayed in Regent Residences yesterday, but he¡¯s following Missus today. Is he going back to Bryn field?¡¯ Zachary was silent. After a while, he said, ¡°Go back to Regent Residences, but. ¡± He looked at the familiar car in front of him without saying a word. They silently escorted Serenity¡¯s car back to Bryn field before he returned to his vi. Jim was a smart man and instantly saw through Zachary¡¯s thoughts, so he told the driver the details. Serenity knew that there was a car following her, which was Zachary¡¯s, but Wilt spoon was a big city so there were many cars on the road evente at night. However, even if she saw luxury cars, she would not know that they belonged to Zachary. When she reached a traffic light intersection, seven or eight youths standing by the roadside suddenly rushed out, and Serenity mmed on the brakes. ee SCSCSCSC¡®(¡®CCC(¨¦t¨¦t¨¦tldSs Just as she was about to hit them, the car stopped in time She broke out ina cold sweat and took a while toe back to her senses. Knock! Knock! One of the youths tapped on her car window. Serenity thought she had hit one of them after all. She quickly wound down the window, only to see the face of her youngest cousin, ¡°It¡¯s you?¡± She frowned. ¡°Do you have a death wish? Do you know what would¡¯ve happened if | didn¡¯t brake in time? If you want to die, please go somewhere far away. Don¡¯t dirty my wheels. ¡± Her youngest cousin, Noah Hunt, was only a teenager. He was at an age where rebellion and ignorance were at their peaks. Last time, her cousins went to her store to talk about reconciliation. Noah was particrly arrogant and said that he would smash up her store. However, tonight, he brought a group of youngsters of around the same age as he was to block her car. Were they trying to cause trouble? ¡°So what if it¡¯s me? Get out of the car, Serenity! If you don¡¯t, Ill smash your car! You have money to buy a new car, but you won¡¯t help Grandma pay her medical bills. Do you know how much she spent on her hospitalization?¡± Noah was young and exuberant. He did not know much about the past. He only knew that after his grandmother got sick, this cousin of his never visited the old woman in the hospital and refused to pay for the medical bills. His parents said that Serenity and her sister should have paid the money for Grandison¡¯s treatment. Liberty had no money, but Serenity did. Look, she even bought a new car that was worth more than one hundred thousand dors. She was rich enough to buy a car, but she refused to help his grandmother pay for medical expenses. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org When his brothers wrote a blog post using Serenity, she spouted nonsense and purposefully misled public scrutiny, causing the ignorantizens to use them instead. That caused his eldest brother¡¯s business to drop, and his second brother was suspended from work. Even his parents¡¯ and other brothers¡¯ jobs were affected. Noah was furious. When they took the initiative to reconcile with Serenity, she refused to forgive them. He wanted to smash her bookstore that day but was stopped by his cousins. In the past few days, he heard his parents muttering about the need to get a sum of money to pay for his grandmother¡¯s medical bills. Theyined that it would cost a lot of money to treat her. When Noah remembered that all this was caused by Serenity¡¯s unwillingness to pay, he gathered a bunch of his friends. They loitered around her bookstore during the day and memorized her car license te number. Chapter 224 Chapter 224 Chapter 224 ¨C They then waited untilte at night when there were only a few cars on the road. They waited by the road for Serenity to pass by and stop her car. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡®How much money she spent has nothing to do with me. Back then, when she used money to cut off our ties as grandparents and grandchildren, she said we neither had to take care of her when she was alive nor bury her when she died. You weren¡¯t old enough to remember that. If you don¡¯t know what happened that year, look back at the online post I made or ask your parents about it. ¡°However, your parents probably won¡¯t admit it. The money the Hunt family is spending was thepensation money my parents gave with their lives. Otherwise, how could they live such happy lives now?¡± Serenity¡¯s expression was icy cold as she retorted to Noah. T don¡¯t care. Get out of the car. I¡¯ll give you until the count of three. If you don¡¯t get out, I¡¯ll smash your car. ¡± Noah was extremely arrogant since he had numbers on his side. The punks he brought with him had surrounded Serenity¡¯s car. There were also vehicles slowly approaching from behind. Noah and his party were young and energetic, thinking that people generally did not dare to meddle in other people¡¯s business in this day and age. Thus, they did not pay attention _ to the cars that were slowly approaching. | ¡°ee Serenity took the opportunity to pick up the iron bar that slipped from Noah¡¯s hands. Then, she waved it and beat up Noah¡¯spanions. All of them ended up wailing on the ground. As Noah howled while still on his bums, he shouted arrogantly, ¡°I¡¯m going to sue you for intentional injury! I¡¯ll tell the police to arrest you and make you pay for our medical expenses. ¡± Serenity stepped forward and on her little cousin¡¯s face. She looked down on him from above and said with a sneer, ¡°I¡¯m acting in self-defenses, so go ahead. I¡¯d like to see who gets arrested in the end. ¡± ¡°Do you have evidence to prove that you were defending yourself?¡± Serenity released her foot, squatted down, and pulled her youngest cousin¡¯s ear. ¡°Noah Hunt, you don¡¯t even know what a dashcam is? All those haughty words you used to threaten me earlier were recorded. You were the one who made the first move too. Also, look over there. There¡¯s a surveince camera as well. ¡± Noah was speechless Chapter 225 Chapter 225 Chapter 225 ¨C Noah miscalcted. He chose the wrong ce. This was near a traffic light intersection, so there was surveince everywhere. It was true that they started the fight and Serenity was only acting in selfdefense. oah thought it would be easy to deal with Serenity if he came with a group of seven or eight men as she was a weak woman. Unexpectedly, she knew how to fight. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. His family never told him that she knew the art of self-defense. ¡°What do you want?¡± Noah tried to save his ear, but Serenity pulled harder. He screamed in pain and cursed, ¡°Let go! My parents won¡¯t forgive you if you rip my ear off!¡± ¡°Call me Sis. ¡± ¡°Bah! You¡¯re not my sister. ¡± ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m not your sister. I don¡¯t have a cousin like you. ¡± Serenity tugged harder, and Noah wailed in pain. Hispanions had long been frightened by her fighting skills when they were defeated by her. Seeing her abusing Noah¡¯s ear, they quietly retreated. ¡°Stop right there, all of you!¡± Serenity¡¯s bellow made the punks freeze in their tracks. All of them had bitter expressions. ¡° Ms. Hunt, we were blind and offended you. We were wrong. We were hired by Noah. It¡¯s Noah¡¯s fault. Miss, please have mercy and let us go. ¡± The punks spoke to her politely. Noah was speechless. ¡®Those spineless things! ¡®Ow, my ear hurts! Is this damned woman going to rip my ear off?¡¯ ¡°Serenity¡­ S-Sis, stop pulling. Stop pulling! I¡¯ll call you Sis, okay?¡± Noah wanted to cry. Serenity let go of his ear and patted his face twice before asking with a vague smile, ¡°Am I your sister?¡± ¡°Yes yes yes, we have the same grandparents, and our fathers are brothers, so we¡¯re close cousins. ¡± Noah could not win against Serenity and fell into her hands instead. His bravado onlysted for a minute before he crumbled. He even yed the family card. Serenity stood up and saw the cars behind her that were parked a hundred meters away. She did not know if they were there because they were afraid of inviting trouble or simply watching the show, but she did not care. She took out her phone and called the police. Noah and the others panicked when they saw her call the police. Noah endured the pain and went on his knees, hugging one of Serenity¡¯s legs with both hands. ¡°Sis! We were just messing around, Sis. Don¡¯t call the police. You don¡¯t have to call the police. We¡¯ll apologize to you. ¡± Serenity looked down and asked sarcastically, ¡°I thought you said you wanted to call the police to arrest me? And that you wanted me to pay for your medical fees? I¡¯m calling the police for you, so you should thank me. ¡± Noah was speechless. He was not good at studying, but even so, he knew they were in the wrong. Serenity was acting in self-defense. However, they were not strong enough and could not beat her. If she called the police, they might be detained. Serenity kicked Noah away and called the cops anyway. ¡®Noah is too young and is already used to being arrogant, so I¡¯m reporting him to the police to teach him a lesson, lest he gets into bigger trouble in the future. I¡¯m saving him since we have blood rtions. ¡®No need to thank me!¡¯ When Noah saw Serenity calling the police while disregarding their familial rtionship, he yelled at her, ¡°My parents said you were cold-hearted and ruthless. It seems to be true. They¡¯re not wrong about you!¡± Chapter 226 Chapter 226 Chapter 226 ¨C ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m cold- hearted and ruthless, but are you righteous and loyal? You didn¡¯t know how your parents and the others treated me before, but do you still not know now? Do you think I¡¯ll let it go just because it¡¯s in the past? I¡¯ll never forget what they did to me for the rest of my life!¡± Noah opened his mouth, but he was unable to refute it. In the end, he stood up, turned around, and ran. Serenity went after him and swept him to the ground with a single kick. Then, she grabbed his shirt roughly and dragged him back, causing him to scream in pain again as his skin grazed the ground. After throwing him at the group of punks, she warned them. ¡° I advise you to stay here obediently and wait for the police to rescue you. If anyone dares to run, don¡¯t me me for being impolite. ¡± The punks were frightened by Serenity¡¯s ferocity. No one dared to run again. Noah kept cursing at Serenity, and she warned him with a dark expression, ¡°One more word out of you and I¡¯ll beat you till your face swells up like a balloon. ¡± Noah was terrified and he instantly fell silent, not daring to curse at her anymore. However, he cursed at her ancestors in his heart. Serenity¡¯s ancestors were also Noah¡¯s ancestors. Their ancestors must be rolling in their graves. They could not me S¡ªS¡ª¡°CsSC¡°¡®SCNC¡® (¡®iSNNRHKNNSNSNWNS#N(C¡®C##sN#WYV¡° wait to wee the descendant who was cursing at them. Zachary saw that Serenity had theplete upper hand. He did not even have the chance to save the damsel in distress. Of course, even if Serenity was in danger, he would not show up. At most, he would arrange for bodyguards other than Jim to go and help her beat the thugs up. He knew Serenity learned mixed martial arts before, but he was not aware of her skills. ¡®To think I was worried about her just now. ¡®Those punks couldn¡¯t even touch her. ¡¯ ¡°Drive,¡± Zacharymanded in a low voice. ¡°Jim, don¡¯t let her see you. ¡± Jim had sent him home twice, so Serenity remembered how he looked. Thus, he could not let her see Jim. The driver started driving again. In order to prevent Serenity from recognizing him, Jim turned his head and looked at the other side of the road before turning back only when they had passed by Serenity. The driver drove much faster now so Zachary¡¯s car sped past before Serenity could see anything clearly. Furthermore, she was not familiar with the bodyguards¡¯ cars that followed behind. Shortly after Zachary¡¯s motorcade passed, the cops arrived. After a little interrogation, the policemen sympathetically picked up those thugs on the ground and led them to the patrol car. They blocked the road and threatened to assault Serenity, but they were beaten up instead. Serenity had to follow them to the station to make a statement. With footage from the dashcam and traffic monitoring, the thugs were on their best behavior when they arrived at the station and confessed to everything. Serenity was the victim, but she learned mixed martial arts and knew how to defend herself, so she did not get hurt. This is from N?velDrama.Org. Thus, she only acted in self-defense. After making the statement, she could leave. As for Noah and the others, they could not leave and were detained. Even though Noah mentioned that Serenity and he were cousins, and it was just a family conflict, he was still detained because Serenity refused to forgive him. Noah thought, ¡®I wanted to get revenge on Serenity, but I ended up in a cell instead. Prev N Chapter 227 Chapter 227 Chapter 227 ¨C When Serenity got home, it was already one in the morning. The house was dark when she pushed the door open. Either Zachary did note back, or he was in his room. Serenity silently closed the door, locked it, and turned on the lights in the hall. After a minute of silence, she went to Zachary¡¯s room. She was just about to raise her hand to knock on the door before she remembered that it was already late at night, and Nana had mentioned that Zachary would be furious if he was awakened before his natural body clock woke him up. She dismissed the idea of knocking on the door. So what if he was at home? They were having a cold war. She finally turned around and went into her room. The night passed without a word. The next morning, Serenity was catching up on her sleep because she went to bed tootest night. Zachary, who went back to Regent Residences, woke up as usual. He changed into sportswear and prepared to go out fora morning run. When he went downstairs, Sam told him, ¡°Mr. Zachary, Old Mrs. York is here. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression sank slightly at the words. Without stopping his feet, he walked out of the main house at a steady pace and saw his nana stepping out of the car. Although he did not like his nana¡¯s sudden intrusion into his a life, he quickly walked over to help her. The olddy did not refuse his thoughtfulness. Seeing his sportswear, she asked him, ¡°Going for a morning run?¡± ¡°Yeah. ¡± ¡°Grandma will run a fewps with you. ¡± Zachary frowned. ¡°Nana, you¡¯ re getting old. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m still as healthy as a horse. ¡± Zachary was helpless. Since his grandmother insisted on running with him, he had to give in. The pair walked out of the vi together and jogged on the cement track in the neighborhood. Although the woman was old, she was in the pink of health. When she was at home, she sometimes worked in the fields together with the workers. She was an olddy who never put on airs, and all the workers in York Manor adored her. ¡°You were living well in Brynfield. Why did you move back again?¡± In fact, Old Mrs. York came over because she received news that there was a problem between her eldest grandson and Serenity. However, she did not know what the problem was. Cullum only mentioned that Zachary had been a bit distractedtely. She heard from Sam that Zachary moved back to the vi. She was hoping that sparks would fly between the newlyweds and wanted them to be a real couple, so she rushed over to see if she could mediate the young couple¡¯s conflict. ¡°I¡¯m more used to living here. ¡± Thisrge vi was bought by Zachary after he became an adult, and he had been living in it ever since. Apart from the old residence, this ce was his second home. As for the other vis under his name, he would stay there when there was a need. Most of the time, he would return to Regent Residences. ¡°Did you fight with Serenity?¡± The olddy asked her eldest grandson who was beside her as she slowed down to a walk. Zachary said indifferently, ¡°I¡¯m aman of ss. I won¡¯t bicker with her.This is from N?velDrama.Org. ¡± He refused to admit that he had lost his manners that night and forcibly kissed Serenity. Never in his dreams would he make such a vile move. Thinking back on it now, he wanted to give himself a p on the face. Where did his upbringing go? Where did his manners go? Was hisposure eaten by a dog? Chapter 228 Chapter 228 Chapter 228 ¨C ¡°What did Serenity do to keep you from going back to Bryn field? ¡°Nothing. ¡± ¡°Zack, I watched you grow up. In this family, the person who knows you best is me. If nothing happened between you two, you wouldn¡¯t havee back here to stay. What exactly did Serenity do? It¡¯s fine even if you don¡¯t want to tell me. I can find out when I go to her shopter and ask her. ¡± Zachary stopped and looked at his grandmother, feeling a little angry. ¡°Nana, we agreed that you won¡¯t interfere in anything after I get married to Serenity. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not interfering. I¡¯m just concerned and want to know what happened to you two. You¡¯re proud and egotistical, but you pretend to be poor and marry Serenity. She doesn¡¯t know your true identity at all. Even if you¡¯re wrong, you won¡¯t easily bow your head and apologize. When it hase to this point, you need me to be the mediator to help you ease your frozen rtionship. ¡± Old Mrs. York indeed promised Zachary that she would not interfere in the married couple¡¯s lives after he married Serenity. However, she kept an eye on the young couple¡¯s every move. She knew everything, from how the young couple forgot about each other in the beginning, to how they got along and how Zachary gradually came to care about Serenity. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org She even patted herself on the back, praising herself for her good eyesight. The young couple had developed as per her expectations, Surprisingly, the couple separated before she could feel SIN about it. The olddy was anxious. She was still waiting to hold a great grandchild. ¡°It¡¯s just a little misunderstanding. It¡¯s not a big problem, so you don¡¯t have to worry. You don¡¯t need to ask Serenity either. I¡¯ll go back to Bryn field in a few days. ¡± Zachary remained reluctant in telling her the real reason. After the talk with Josh, Zachary vaguely felt that he had acted out of jealousy. Josh also said that he was starting to care about Serenity. However, he refused to admit it and could not put down his ego. Just because Serenity ate with Shawn, he suspected her of cheating on him, so he felt humiliated. In reality, they got married in secret, so not many people knew they were husband and wife. Putting aside whether Serenity and Shawn were innocent, and even if they did Zachary wrong, outsiders were not aware of his rtionship with Serenity, so how would he be humiliated? He got angry, questioned Serenity, and only believed what he saw with his own eyes because he developed a desire to control her. He had a domineering nature. Once he started to care about a woman, he would not want to see her eating with other men even if her best friend was present. He wanted Serenity¡¯s thoughtfulness and bright smile to belong to him only, but she was not aware of this. He was stubborn and refused to admit his mistake, so the couple ended up in this situation. They deleted and blocked each other¡¯s contacts, lived separately, and were now in a cold war. ¡°Are you sure there¡¯s no problem?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± Old Mrs. Yorkughed. ¡°Fine, I believe you. Since you say there¡¯s no problem, then there¡¯s no problem. Even if I go find my granddaughter- inw, | won¡¯t ask her so as to save you some dignity. ¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face was slightly embarrassed, but he said stubbornly in a low voice, ¡°I don¡¯t need you to help me save my dignity. ¡± She smiled and patted her grandson¡¯s shoulder. ¡°Zack, you¡¯re a man, so you must be able to give and take. Besides, you and Serenity are husband and wife. You¡¯ll be spending the rest of your lives together. Is there any hurdle out there that is impossible to ovee?¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°I signed a six month agreement with Serenity. If we don¡¯t fall in love with each other within these six months, we¡¯ll get a divorce. You don¡¯t have to think that she got the short end of the stick. | didn¡¯t touch her, so she¡¯s still pure. ¡± At most, he would kiss her once or twice when she teased him and he could not stand it. He only forcefully kissed her once that night. He just kissed her small mouth, so it would not have much ¡°impact on her remarriage. ¡°We got married in secret, So not many people know about it. The damage to her after the divorce would be minimize¡é too. Also, I promised to give her the house in Brynfield. as well as the national MPV. I won¡¯t make her leave without a penny¡¯ to her name old Mrs. York though, ¡°This little sh*t! Chapter 229 Chapter 229 Chapter 229 ¨C Old Mrs. York was infuriated at her prandson¡¯s behavior, so much se she did not want to walk anymore, She sat down on stone bennah by the roadside, She spentso mueh ettort talking her grandson into agreeing to pet married, but. Zachary was silent for moment. He then came over and sat beside his nana. He said cleanly, ¡°Nana, you know that love can¡¯t be forced. Laws raised by you, and you asked me to marry her to repay your kindness, so 1 listened to you. ¡°You promised me that you won¡¯t interfere with our married fife. The day [got my marriage license with Serenity, | told you that T have to examine her character and see if she¡¯s worthy for me to spend the rest of my life with. Otherwise, we¡¯ll end it in halfa year. ¡± Old Mrs. York said grumpily, ¡°With your nasty temper, you wouldn¡¯t admit it even if you fell in love with Serenity. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Forget it, ¡¯m not angry. | was wrong when I forced you to marry Serenity. You¡¯re rapt. Love can¡¯t be forced. You can do whatever you want. As you said, you two married secretly, so not many people know that you¡¯re husband and wife. Even if you divorce, the damage to Serenity can be ldadinbaed. ¡± She sighed. ¡°1 Just hope that you won¡¯t regret it. Don¡¯te me S¡ªC ¡ª¡°C*iSCSC¡°¡®¡°¡®#$UNNNNNNNNNCC¡¯CNC¡®SCN¡®C¡®(¡®(¡¯CN#K$#NCWNCWNCW VW lime and beg me to help you ta the future. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips tightly without saying a word. ¡°Call the driver over for me. Pin leaving now. When [see you, it feels like Pim seeing your grandfather. Before he passed, he was worried about your marriage and feared that you would be a bachelor your whole life. ¡± Zachary thought, ¡®I was still very young when Grandpa passed, alright? There was no need to worry about marriage at that age. ¡¯ Of course, he was not old now either. He was only thirty. ¡®Have breakfast before you go, Nana. ¡± Regardless, Zachary was still filial to his nana. He was brought up by his grandparents. After his grandfather passed, his nana suddenly became lonely. He spent a long time apanying her before she overcame the pain of losing the love of her life. When she finally returned to her old yet youthful state, he was relieved and proceeded to take care of thepany. ¡°T lost my appetite just by looking at your face. I¡¯ll eat at Serenity¡¯s shop. I¡¯ll only regain my appetite when I see my granddaughter ¨C inw¡¯s face. ¡± Zachary was not angry at being snubbed by his nana. He knew she adored Serenity, and not just because thetter saved her life. Serenity¡¯s character was very much to Nana¡¯s liking. ¡°T¡¯ll tell Sam to pack breakfast for you to bring over and eat with Serenity. ¡± Old Mrs. York thought about it and agreed. She instructed her grandson, Tell Sam to pack more. Serenity has a good appetite. That Jasmine girl is there too, With those two around, L think Lean clear on entire buffet. ¡± Zachary thought of Serenity¡¯s potential as a glutton and asmile appeared in his eyes. He had to admit that he liked eating with her too. Every time he saw her eating with gusto, he felt his appetite improve, and he would eat an extra serving. ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary took out his phone and called Sam. He instructed him to pack three servings of breakfast and have Old Mrs. York¡¯s driver brings them over as Nana would be going to Wilt spoon School. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Sam understood. ¡®¡®Nana, are you really noting back with me for breakfast?¡± Zachary rified with his grandmother even after instructing Sam to pack breakfast. ¡°No. If 1 go with you, Serenity would have finished eating by the time I reach her store. ¡± She then immediately took out her phone and said, ¡°I¡¯ll tell her so she doesn¡¯t buy breakfast herself. ¡± Zachary watched silently as his grandmother called Serenity. He also wanted to know what time she went home after giving her statement at the police station. ¡°Nana. ¡± Serenity was awakened by the phone call, so her voice sounded a little groggy when she greeted Nana. The old woman could instantly tell that Serenity was still sleeping, and sheughed. ¡°You¡¯re not up yet? I thought you would¡¯ve already woken up by now. ¡± n the past, Serenity would have gone to the market to buy food and returned by this time. ¡°T went to bedtest night, so I slept in today. Where are you now, Nana?¡± Serenity thought the olddy wasing over so she inquired. Chapter 230 Chapter 230 Chapter 230 ¨C ¡°I¡¯m outside now. I¡¯m going to your store to have breakfast with you. By the way, you don¡¯t need to get takeouts for breakfast, Seren. I bought three portions. I¡¯ll bring them over to eat with you and Jasmine. ¡± ¡°Sure. Wait for me in the store then. I¡¯ll be right there. But Nana, you don¡¯t have to get up so early in the future. You can sleep in. I won¡¯t be hungry. ¡± ¡°Tam old now and a light sleeper. I wake up as soon as the sun rises, so I¡¯m used to it. I¡¯m not worried about you going hungry. I just like eating with you. Food tastes especially good when it¡¯s with you. ¡± Serenityughed. For the past few months, she often ate with the olddy. Old Mrs. York knew that many old stores in Wilt spoon serve delicious snacks. She would often take Serenity and Jasmine to eat all these famous and most authentic snacks in Wilt spoon. Serenity and Jasmine both felt that Old Mrs. York was definitely a glutton when she was in her youth. Now that she was old, she could not eat a lot. Furthermore, since her living conditions had improved, her pte became picky. That was why her appetite decreased. The two chatted for a while before Old Mrs. York hung up the phone. Then, she looked up and saw her grandson¡¯s dark eyes staring straight at her. She was taken aback, so she asked, ¡°What are you looking at me like that for? Did you want me to ask her something?¡± Zachary¡¯s lips which were pursed into a straight line parted. ¡° You¡¯ve hung up. Is there a point In me saying It now?¡± ¡°Why didn¡¯t you speak up before?¡± He tensed his face and turned silent. Old Mrs. York smacked his arm and said, Look, this is exactly what I¡¯m talking about. You¡¯re just so stubborn. If you want to say or ask anything, just open your mouth and ask! You always make that long face and purse your lips. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. It¡¯s as if your mouth wasn¡¯t made to speak. ¡°Your grandfather and I weren¡¯t clumsy in speech. How did you grow up to be like this? You have a perfectly working mouth, but you don¡¯t know how to speak. ¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face was quietly tinted red. He was scolded by his nana. ¡°Tell me. What did you want to ask Serenity? I¡¯ll help you ask her when I see herter. ¡± Old Mrs. York finally chose to help her grandson since she looked forward to the young couple getting along. Zachary tensed his face again and remained silent. Old Mrs. York was furious and wanted to smack him again. She rubbed her hands together and muttered incessantly, ¡°Is he my grandson? Is he really my grandson?¡± ¡°T just want to know what time she came backst night. She had an ident yesterday. ¡± ¡°What ident?¡± ¡°A bunch of punks stopped her car in the middle of the road. They wanted to beat her up, but she managed to fight back. Finally, the police took the punks and her back to the station. ¡± As soon as he finished speaking, Old Mrs. York red at him. The next second, she smacked him even more forcefully. Zachary was wearing a running tank top, so his arms were bare. A red mark bloomed on his arm after being pped by his nana. It was as clear as day how angry she was at the moment. ¡°You saw that happening? Yet you didn¡¯t do anything? Zachary, even if you don¡¯t love Serenity, you can¡¯t just stand by and do nothing if you see her in danger. Even if it¡¯s a stranger, you should also stand up for what¡¯s right, let alone your wife. ¡± Zachary waited until his grandmother was done scolding him and said sullenly, ¡°She¡¯s very skilled. I didn¡¯t even have the chance to save the damsel in distress. ¡± Old Mrs. York¡¯s berate came to an abrupt halt. Chapter 231 Chapter 231 Chapter 231 ¨C Old Mrs. York looked at her grandson, and her grandson looked at her. Her lips moved several times to say something, but she did not speak. In the end, she burst intoughter. Zachary was exasperated as he watched his nanaugh uncontrobly. Old Mrs. York grinned and patted his shoulder. Zachary had to hold his grandmother for fear that she would fall if sheughed too hard. After a while, she finally stoppedughing and said ¡°Zack, I was wrong about you. Serenity learned mixed martial arts, and her skill is quite good, so it¡¯s no problem for her to handle a handful of punks. ¡°My suggestion to you next time is when you see her in trouble, regardless if she needs help or not. Just go up and save her. In fact, it¡¯s better if you get hurt while saving her. That way, she¡¯ll feel guilty about it and will treat you exceptionally well. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was gloomy, and his thin lips pursed tightly. ¡°You need to know a few tricks if you want to chase after your wife. Of course, the most important thing is your sincerity. ¡± He said coldly, ¡°Nana, I won¡¯t chase after my wife. ¡± ¡°Fine fine fine, you won¡¯t. Just continue being stubborn. The day wille when you beg me for help, hehe. ¡± TN Zachary¡¯s expression was dark. ¡®Is this really my nana? ¡®Why do I feel like she¡¯s just waiting tough at me? ¡®It¡¯s like she¡¯s taking pleasure in my misfortune. ¡¯ ld Mrs. York¡¯s driver had arrived. ¡°Tm leaving now. You take your (me running. If you have no appetite for breakfast, learn from me. My method is proven effective. I¡¯m way more experienced than you. ¡± She patted his shoulder again and walked to the car with a smile on her face. She asked the driver, ¡°Did Sam tell you to bring the packed breakfast?¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s in the car. ¡± Old Mrs. York hummed in response. Zachary opened the door for her and helped her get into the car. He saw the three insted lunch boxes lying on the seat and he pursed his lips without a word spoken. Old Mrs. York left while Zachary stood and watched his grandmother leave. After a moment, he walked back. The morning jog ended. Back at the vi, he changed his clothes and went downstairs to have breakfast. Since Old Mrs. York told Sam to pack three servings of breakfast for her to take away, the breakfast that the kitchen prepared for Zachary was packed away too. They quickly prepared another portion for Zachary, but it was not a rich spread due to theck of time. Zachary did not have much of an appetite, so he did not bicker with the kitchen staff about the breakfast. He grabbed a bite or two and drank half a cup of coffee to improve his mentalstate, before leaving with his group of bodyguards. The concrete road in front of the vi area was connected to arge expressway. It was a road the residents had to pass through. Zachary¡¯s motorcade traveled half of this road before it was forced to stop. There was a car stopped in the middle of the road ahead of them. This was not a public road. The road was only wide enough for two cars to pass side to side if they drove very carefully. Otherwise, it would be easy to collide. The stationary car happened to be in the middle of the road. Thus, whether it was from the left or right, the cars behind it did not have enough space to pass by. Zachary¡¯s driver honked. The driver of the car in front climbed out from under the car and said loudly in embarrassment, ¡°My car broke down. ¡± Zachary¡¯s driver turned his head and said to Zachary, ¡°Mr. Zachary, there¡¯s a car in front that broke down. ¡± No one knew what Zachary was thinking. After he heard the driver¡¯s words, he simply nced at the car in front and said, ¡° You two get off and take a look. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. If it¡¯s repairable, then help him. If it takes too long, tell everyone to help push his car to the side, and then tell him to call for a tow truck. Don¡¯t block other people¡¯s way Chapter 232 Chapter 232 Chapter 232- ¡°Yes, sir. ¡± Zachary¡¯s driver and Jim got out of the car. The driver in distress was grateful for the two who got out to help him. After checking the car, Zachary¡¯s driver said, ¡°It¡¯ll take several hours for your car to be repaired. We¡¯re in a rush and can¡¯t help you. I¡¯ll ask some people to help you push the car to the side so you don¡¯t block the iing traffic. You can call a tow truckter. ¡± The car could be moved to the side with everyone¡¯sbined efforts. As long as the car was moved, it would not block the cars behind. With gratitude, the driver said, ¡°Of course, then I¡¯ll thank you in advance. Um, the youngdy I¡¯m working for has urgent business to attend to. Could you give her a ride?¡± Jim and the driver did not dare to agree without permission, but Jim returned to the Rolls-Royce and respectfully asked their boss. ¡°Mr. Zachary, there¡¯s another person in the car in front. The driver said she¡¯s a youngdy who he¡¯s serving, and she has urgent business to attend to. His car will need to be towed away for repair, so he asked if we can give hisdy a ride?¡± Zachary asked coldly, ¡°Which family is she from? ¡± Jim replied hesitantly, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask. ¡± a ¡°Ask him and then arrange for it¡­ Never mind, there¡¯s no need to ask. I already know who it is. ¡± Zachary saw who the youngdy was as she came down from the car. It was none other than Elisa Stone, the woman who would not stop pestering him after publicly confessing her love to him and openly pursuing him. Serenity told him that Elisa had gone to the beach for a vacation. Why was she back so soon? Seeing Elisa walking toward his car, Zachary¡¯s handsome face tensed up. He suddenly remembered Serenity telling him that Elisa had asked her for advice on how to pursue him. Meanwhile, that damned woman Serenity had enthusiastically taught Elisa a method to help take him down. He had never seen such a generous wife before. She actually helped another woman chase after her own husband. Zachary instantly felt that Elisa¡¯s car breaking down was deliberate. n the past, she always drove herself out, but she let a driver drive her this time. It was clearly to block his way. Jim saw Elisa and was a little surprised. However, he did not say anything and simply retreated to the side without a word. Elisa walked over and bent down slightly to knock on Zachary¡¯s window. Zachary refused to pay her any attention and did not wind down the window. ¡°Zachary, my car broke down. Can you give me a ride?¡± Elisa had to raise her voice since Zachary did not lower the window. He maintained his posture of looking straight ahead and did not even nce at her. ¡°Zachary, I promise you that I just want a ride. It won¡¯t affect you in any way. I can sit with your bodyguards. ¡± Jim watched silently. He wondered if his boss would be soft-hearted enough to let Ms. N?velDrama.Org: text ? owner. Stone get into the car. Zachary remained quiet. His bodyguards got out of the car and helped move Elisa¡¯s car to the side. After making sure that other cars would be able to pass through, the bodyguards returned to their own cars. The driver and Jim got into the car as well. The driver turned his head to peek at Zachary, but Jim said in a low voce, ¡° Drive. ¡± ¡°What about Ms. Stone?¡± Were they giving her a ride or not? Jim asked, ¡°Do you want to lose your job?¡± The driver immediately started the car. ¡®I don¡¯t want to lose my job. ¡®Although Mr. Zachary is cold, he offers a very good sry. The amount of money I earn is enough to feed the whole family, so I definitely want to keep my job. ¡¯ Chapter 233 Chapter 233 Chapter 233 ¨C ¡°Zachary! Zachary¡­¡± Elisa chased after Zachary¡¯s car for a few steps and gave up. He refused to let her get into his car. Even if shey under his wheels, he would not stop and simply send her to the afterlife. Elisa watched as his car, followed by his entourage of bodyguards, drove away. She stomped her feet. She ran here early in the morning to block his way, which she seeded, and in return, he helped her a little. After all, his bodyguards had helped to push the car to the side of the road and prevented it from blocking other cars which wereing from behind. However, she was still upset that she was unable to ride in his car. Of course, she would not give up just like that. She would not give up before half a year. It had not been long since her public confession. Hang in there! One day, she would be able to sit in his car. She would be the only young woman who could sit in his car. Elisa, who was daydreaming, felt her mood improve. She called her butler and asked him to arrange for a car to pick her up. ¡°Is the seafood I brought backst night still alive? They¡¯re not dead, right? If they¡¯re not, pack them up for me and send them over as well. 1 want to give them away. ¡± Elisa remembered that she promised Serenity she would send her some seafood after her vacation. She specially brought back a lot of seafood with her from Seaview Vi. Elisa¡¯s parents knew that she made friends with Serenity, and they did not look down on Serenity for being unworthy of befriending their daughter. On the contrary, they were very supportive of her bing friends with Serenity. Maybe it was because she had too few friends. Her parents thought that with Elisa¡¯s picky tastes, if there was someone whom she was willing to make friends with, that person must be a great girl. When Elisa wanted to bring the abundant seafood back for Serenity, Audrey had even personally helped her daughter pack them. Audrey had never seen Serenity, whether it was in person or images online. However, she saw the maneki-neko that Serenity gave her daughter and felt that the former was indeed capable. Furthermore, after knowing Serenity¡¯s life experience, she felt a special affection for this strong and independent girl. It was most likely because she saw a shadow of her youth in Serenity. When she left the orphanage, she had to be independent as well and relied on herself to get to where she was today. Unfortunately, she and her sister were separated, unlike Serenity and her sister who had always been together. Serenity did not know that Elisa had returned from vacation and actually blocked Zachary¡¯s road like how she taught Elisa to. The couple lived separately because they were having a cold war, with Zachary going back to Regent Residences to stay. That was why Elisa had the opportunity to block his car. Liberty had to go job hunting again today. Serenity woke upte, and Liberty could not wait for her toe and pick Sonny up, so she brought him straight to the shop. Fortunately, she clled her sister and told her that she had already sent Sonny to the shop. Serenity was already on the way to Liberty¡¯s house when she received thetter¡¯s call, and she turned back and went to the store instead. Old Mrs. York did not arrive before her. She arrived after Serenity had gotten to the store. Old Mrs. York was thinking abouting to chat with Serenity, so she used a car that matched Zachary¡¯s poverty fa?ade. She went to the used car market and bought a pre- owned car for tens of thousands of dors. That way, it would not arouse Serenity¡¯s suspicion. ¡°Nana. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Serenity held Sonny and walked over to help Old Mrs. York open the car door. Old Mrs. York got out with three insted lunch boxes. Serenity wanted to help, but the old womanughed and said, ¡°No need. They¡¯re not heavy, so I can carry them. Why is Sonny here? Where¡¯s your sister?¡± Old Mrs. York stretched her hand to pinch Sonny¡¯s little face , praising, ¡°Your sister raised Sonny really well. The boy is big and strong. ¡± When would she have a fat great-grandson like Sonny? Chapter 234 Chapter 234 Chapter 234 ¨C Old Mrs. York peeked at Serenity¡¯s stomach, which was t and in. Wesner proud and awkward grandson said that he had not oared Serenity yet. The husband and wife were still pure. It was still too early for her to have a great ¨C grandchild. Serenity disdained how cold Zachary was and could not bring herself to jump him, let alone sleep naked. As for Zachary¡­ Old Mrs. York was worried. She suddenly had a thought. ¡®Could the rumors be true? Does Zachary like men, or does he have some sort of physiological problem? ¡®He¡¯s been married to Serenity for more than a month, and they live together, but he has never exercised his right as a husband. ¡¯ Old Mrs. York decided to tell the cook at home to brew a nourishing soup for Zachary at noon and let Serenity send it to him to nourish his body. Maybe it would help in conceiving a great ¨C grandchild for Old Mrs. York too. It would also help to mend the rtionship between the couple. They could not keep up this cold war and live separately forever. ¡°Sonny, greet Great- grandma. ¡± Serenity had a sudden pride for her nephew who was well raised. ¡°Hello, Great- grandma. ¡± Old Mrs. York was Zachary¡¯s grandmother, and Serenity was from the same generation as Zachary, so Sonny had to address her as great ¨C grandma. Old Mrs. York smiled and praised Sonny for his manners. She went into the store with Serenity. ¡°Grandma May, you¡¯re here. ¡± When Jasmine came out and saw the olddy carrying three insted lunch boxes, she quickly came forward to take the lunch boxes. ¡°I brought you breakfast. Come, let¡¯s eat together. I love eating with you two girls. The food tastes especially good. ¡± When Old Mrs. York entered the store, she treated it like her own home and nonchntly went to wash her hands and get the cutlery. Jasmine opened the lunch boxes. When she saw the breakfast inside, she asked Old Mrs. York, who was emerging from the small kitchen, |¡°Grandma May, did you buy this from a fivestar restaurant?¡± The food was exquisite and smelled heavenly. Jasmine would not believe it if Old Mrs. York said that it was not from a five Star restaurant. Her family hired a cook too, but the cook¡¯s skills were : nowhere as good. | Old Mrs. York could not say that it was made by the chef in Zachary¡¯s house. Since Jasmine asked, she yed along and lied, ¡®I took the lunch boxes to Wilt spoon Hotel and told them to pack the food in them so it stays warm. ¡± Serenity washed her nephew¡¯s hands and said, ¡°Nana, you shouldn¡¯t have. Jasmine and I aren¡¯t fussy eaters. Even if you bought in oatmeal, we would still eat it with pleasure. ¡± ¡°My pension for this month just came in, so I wanted to treat you to a nice meal. ¡± ¡°Nana, your pension should be used for your retirement. ¡± Old Mrs. Yorkughed. ¡°I have a lot of children and grandchildren who will support me in my old age. I don¡¯tck money. I¡¯m just worried I won¡¯t know how to spend all the money I have. All of them give me an allowance every month. Don¡¯t worry. I just bought three servings of breakfast. They didn¡¯t cost much. ¡± Old Mrs. York indeed had a lot of personal assets, and her only worry was indeed about how she was going to spend the money. Serenity did not say more. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. The three adults and one child sat around the checkout counter and ate the delicious breakfast that Old Mrs. York brought. ¡°Serenity, Serenity!¡± Elisa¡¯s voice resounded before her arrival. , Old Mrs. York, who was eating happily, froze when she heard | Elisa¡¯s voice. | ¡®Elisa knows my real identity. I can¡¯t let her see me!¡¯ . Chapter 235 Chapter 235 Chapter 235 ¨C Old Mrs. York was anxious and wanted to slip away, but thought, ¡®Wait, I can¡¯t slip away. Elisa is already at the entrance. If I try to leave, I¡¯ll be caught red-handed. ¡®T need to hide. ¡¯ Thus, she calmly put down her cutlery and said to Serenity and Jasmine, ¡°I¡¯m full now. I have to go to the washroom. ¡± With that, she got up and walked toward the washroom while saying, ¡°When you get old, every trip to the washroom will take at least half an hour. ¡± Serenity and Jasmine were speechless. ¡°Serenity, are you there?¡± Elisa appeared just as Old Mrs. York walked away. She rushed in with a mesh bag of sea shrimps in her left hand and a simr bag of sea crabs in her right hand. ¡°Serenity,e take them. They¡¯re too heavy for me!¡± Elisa was a rich and pampered youngdy. She usually had everything handed over to her on a silver tter and never did anybor, so she felt the two big bags of shrimps and crabs were heavy. When Serenity and Jasmine saw this, they rushed forward and took the two bags of seafood from her hand. ¡°Ms. Stone, what are these?¡± Elisa shook her arms a few times and said, ¡°Gosh, they were so a heavy that my arms are sore. ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you that I¡¯d bring you some seafood when Ie back from vacation? These are really fresh seafood that we fished out when we went out to sea. I had someone pack it up and picked thergest ones to raise so I could bring them to you when I came back. ¡± Serenity looked at the tworge bags of shrimps and crabs andughed. ¡°Ms. Stone, these are too much for us. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s not much. You can keep them and eat them sparingly, or you can process them and keep them frozen in the fridge, then eat them when you feel like it. ¡°There¡¯s more in my car. You guys can go get it since I don¡¯t have any strength left. Where¡¯s this boy from? He¡¯s so cute. ¡± Elisa reached out and touched Sonny¡¯s little face. ¡°He¡¯s my sister¡¯s. She¡¯s busy, so she sent him over for me to look after. ¡± ¡°He¡¯s adorable. He looks a little familiar too. Have I seen your sister before? Oh, I¡¯ve seen photos of you two when you were little. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Yeah, Sonny takes after my sister. Photos of my sister and I when we were young were uploaded online and made the trending search, so it¡¯s normal for you to find him familiar. ¡± Elisa hummed and did not think much about it. After hearing that there was still a lot of seafood in Elisa¡¯s car, Serenity and Jasmine went out to take a look. Lo and behold, they saw the limousine was truly stuffed with seafood. Some were fresh, some were sun-dried like cuttlefish and so on, and some could be kept in the freezer to be eaten slowly over time. ¡°You really shouldn¡¯t have, Ms. Stone. ¡± Serenity thought that it was too much. Elisa said nonchntly, ¡°It¡¯s nothing much. It wasn¡¯t that expensive anyway. I¡¯m happy as long as you don¡¯t mind it. We¡¯re linked by fate, and I think of you as a friend, so you don¡¯t need to be so distant. Hurry up and move them in. You have a fridge in your store, right? If you don¡¯t, I¡¯ll call someone to send you two refrigerators right now. ¡± Thave a fridge. ¡± It was notrge but how could Serenity let Elisa send her two more refrigerators? She put the fresh seafood in the kitchen and prepared to have a seafood feast for brunch. She ced the dried ones in the fridge first. Elisa saw the dishes sitting on the table that had not been cleaned up, as well as the untouched breakfast. She asked, ¡° Are you guys having breakfast now?¡± Chapter 236 Chapter 236 Chapter 236 ¨C ¡°We just finished. ¡± Jasmine quickly cleaned up the dishes, and Elisa asked out of curiosity, ¡°There are four sets of cutlery. Is there someone else?¡± Jasmine said while cleaning up, ¡°Serenity¡¯s grandmother-in-w came over. She¡¯s in the washroom now. ¡± Elisa hummed and stopped asking. She was aware of Serenity¡¯s marriage. Due to the trending news before, she even told her brother to fire John Hunt. She understood Serenity and the Hunt family¡¯s disputes more than others, so undoubtedly she knew Serenity was married too. Not many people from the outside world knew about it. Elisa was not a nosy person, so she did not ask about Serenity¡¯s love life. After Jasmine cleaned up the table, Serenity poured a ss of water for Elisa. ¡°Why are you back from vacation so soon, Ms. Stone?¡± ¡°It¡¯s because I¡¯m worried about my sweetheart, of course. I was with my parents by the beach for two days and came back ¨C to the cityst night. I have something to tell you, Serenity. This morning, I went to block Mr. York¡¯s car the way you taught me, and I actually seeded!¡± Elisa could not wait to share her sess story with Serenity. Serenityughed. ¡°Really? Did you guys talk? Mr. York helped you, right?¡± ¡°Yes, but also no. ¡± Elisa dimmed for a moment before saying, ¡°I didn¡¯t talk with him because he refused to get out of the car. It¡¯s as if he¡¯s afraid that I¡¯ll eat him up. My car broke down, so I wanted to ride in his car, but he wouldn¡¯t let me in. ¡°However, he let his bodyguards get out of their cars and helped move my car to the side to not block the way for other cars. Mind you, it was broken down on purpose. Anyway, I guess he did help me in that aspect, but he didn¡¯t help me all the way. I used your method, but it was only half a sess. ¡± Elisa quickly cheered up again. ¡®At least Zachary didn¡¯t leave me and my car there. He told his bodyguards to help move my car to the side. ¡®This shows that his heart is actually not made of stone. ¡®If I keep this method up, one day, he ¡¯II let me into his car. ¡¯ ¡° It¡¯s a pity I couldn¡¯t get in his car and have a few words with him alone,¡± Elisamented. ¡°T was thinking that I¡¯d have an excuse to buy him dinner and thank him for the ride if I got into his car, but I didn¡¯t get the opportunity. ¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Who said you didn¡¯t get the opportunity? Didn¡¯t he tell his bodyguards to help you move your car? He helped you, so you can use this excuse to go up to him and invite him to dinner, or send him some gifts as thanks. ¡± Elisa¡¯s eyes lit up as she heard Serenity¡¯s idea. ¡°You¡¯re right. Why didn¡¯t I think of that?¡± Serenity teased her, ¡°You wanted to reach the finish line at one go, so you neglected the details. ¡± Elisa was not offended by the teasing and said magnanimously, ¡°I¡¯ve had a crush on him for many years. I was conflicted and forced oneself to give up on him in the past, but I like him too much to let him go, so I mustered the courage to chase after him instead. Loving someone abundantly means wanting more from that person. ¡± She was anxious to win Zachary over. She wanted to get a marriage license with him immediately and be husband and wife. Old Mrs. York, who was hiding from Elisa in the washroom, could hear the conversation between Serenity and her. Since the two girls were not on guard against anyone, they spoke openly and did not lower their volume. Despite her old age, Old Mrs. York¡¯s hearing did not deteriorate, so she could hear their conversation clearly. She never expected Serenity to teach Elisa how to pursue Zachary. ¡®What a good show this is!¡¯ She was not anxious for her grandson but was rejoicing over her grandson¡¯s misfortune instead. : ¡®It¡¯s that little brat¡¯s fault for pretending to be poor to deceive Serenity. N?velDrama.Org ? content. ¡¯ Chapter 237 Chapter 237 Chapter 237 ¨C Serenity had no knowledge that Zachary was the heir of the York family, who was also Elisa¡¯s crush. Elisa only mentioned Mr. York and did not say Zachary¡¯s name, so the two did not know that they were talking about the same person. ¡°Serves him right!¡± Old Mrs. York snickered in the washroom. ¡°The show is getting more and more exciting. ¡± Old Mrs. York, who had the mindset of watching a good show, perked her ears and continued to eavesdrop on the conversation between the two girls outside. Serenity had not forgotten about Nana. After chatting with Elisa for a while, she said to her best friend, ¡°Jasmine, go check up on Nana. She¡¯s been in the washroom for a long time. ¡± Jasmine hummed and turned to walk to the washroom. Sonny was sitting by the side, ying with his toys. Even if there was no adult looking after him, he would simply y in the store instead of wandering out. He was a smart boy. Elisa had thought that her ploy did not work, but after hearing Serenity¡¯s idea, she was enlightened and said to Serenity with a grin, ¡°You¡¯re really my best advisor. Thank you. I¡¯ll go find Mr. York now and invite him to dinner. If he refuses, I¡¯1l wait in front of hispany. He won¡¯t be able to get rid of me unless he orders takeout. ¡°By the way, what kind of gifts do you usually give to your husband, Serenity?¡± Serenity said honestly, ¡°I¡¯ve only given him a few sets of clothes, and a miniature tree, maneki-neko, and gold dragon to him. ¡° They¡¯re not worth much. ¡± She did not know if he even wore the clothes she gave him. She had only seen him wear the tie once. If Zachary were to find out that his wife had these thoughts, he would vomit blood. That day, he deliberately went to work wearing the new clothes and tie she gave him. All the executives who saw him that day recognized that he was wearing a differentbel. However, only the gossipy Josh knew the truth while the others did not. Nevertheless, at least they could tell that something was different. On the other hand, Serenity had no inkling for the entire day. She even thought that he did not wear the clothes she gave him. ¡°I won¡¯t send him clothes for now since he won¡¯t ept them anyway. Besides, I don¡¯t know what size he wears. All his clothes are tailored by senior designers. ¡± The clothing designer responsible for Zachary¡¯s daily wear was particrly tight-lipped. Elisa had spent a lot of money trying to pry open his mouth, but she failed each time. _ She had a crush on Zachary for many years, but she still did not know what size of clothes he wore. ¡°Serenity, do you have any finished products now? | think your crafts are beautiful. | took home the maneki-neko you gave me, and my mom also said that it looked amazing. She even said that she¡¯d buy from your online shop when she has the time and help your business. ¡°If you have ready-made products now, sell me a few. I¡¯ll take them to him as a gift. ¡± Serenity said, ¡°These goods aren¡¯t worth much. Are you sure you want to give him such trinkets?¡± ¡®He¡¯s the high and mighty Mr. York. The York family has assets worth hundreds of billions. Mr. York might not take a fancy to something even if it¡¯s an exotic treasure, but Elisa wanted to give such little trinkets to him. ¡¯ ¡°He doesn¡¯tck anything, so if I want to give him something, it has to be skillfully made. He¡¯ll only ept it if it¡¯s to his liking. ¡± Elisa did not think that there was anything wrong with giving handicrafts as gifts. She was very fond of the crafts Serenity made. ¡°Since you don¡¯t mind, I have a few finished products here now. I can let you have two, but not too many. Some of them are due to be delivered to customers who pre-ordered them. ¡± After the previous experience, Serenity would not dare give the goods ordered by other customers to Elisa again. She was only willing to sell two items in her stock to Elisa. ¡°That¡¯s fine. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Could you take them out and let me see what r )) e they are? Chapter 238 Chapter 238 Chapter 238 ¨C ¡°It¡¯s a pair of phoenixes, a male and a female. ¡± Serenity got up and walked to the big box where she stored her crafts to bring out a delicate and beautiful box. She ced the box in front of Elisa and said, ¡°They¡¯re inside. ¡± Elisa opened the box and retrieved two well-woven phoenixes from it, andplimented, ¡°They¡¯re so lifelike. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Serenity, your hands are amazing. How much are these phoenixes? I¡¯ll buy them. ¡± ¡°We¡¯re close, and you think of me as a friend, so Ill just charge you the cost for the materials. ¡± Elisa ced the two phoenixes back into the box and said, ¡° It¡¯s precisely because we¡¯ refriends that I can¡¯t take advantage of you. I¡¯ll pay however much it¡¯s worth. I can¡¯t just pay you for the cost of the materials. I¡¯ve seen the price of your goods on the online store. I don¡¯t remember the exact number, but these two phoenixes seem to cost a few hundred. ¡± She took out her purse from her Hermes bag and withdrawal small stack of cash. Without even counting, she shoved the bank notes into Serenity¡¯s hands and said, ¡°Keep the change and don¡¯t countte amount. Just take it. If Mr. York epts my gift, 1¡¯ll help you market your products. I guarantee that your sales will increase by several fold. ¡± ¡°In that case, I¡¯ll thank you in advance. ¡± Since Elisa was so firm, Serenity did not refuse. She did not find change or count the money, and simply husband, Serenity?¡± Serenity said honestly, ¡°I¡¯ve only given him a few sets of clothes, and a miniature tree, maneki-neko, and gold dragon to him. ¡°They¡¯re not worth much. ¡± She did not know if he even wore the clothes she gave him. She had only seen him wear the tie one. If Zachary were to find out that his wife had these thoughts, he would vomit blood. That day, he deliberately went to work wearing the new clothes and tie she gave imp. All the executives who saw him that day recognized that he was wearing a differentbel. However, only the gossipy Josh knew the truth while the others did not. Nevertheless, at least they could tell that something was different. On the other hand, Serenity had no inkling for the entire day. She even thought that he did not wear the clothes she gave him. ¡°I won¡¯t send him clothes for now since he won¡¯t ept them anyway. Besides, I don¡¯t know what size he wears. All his clothes are tailored by senior designers. ¡± The clothing designer responsible for Zachary¡¯s daily wear was particrly tight-lipped. Elisa had spent a lot of money trying to pry open his mouth, but she failed each time. _ She had a crush on Zachary for many years, but she still did ¡°I¡¯m fine. I just got carried away while watching a video and spent too much time inside. ¡± Serenity and Jasmine were speechless. ¡°Who came just now? I think I heard you guys talking,¡± Old Mrs. York asked with a curious expression. ¡°She¡¯s a new friend I made. She went to the beach for a vacation and sent me a lot of seafood now that she¡¯s back. Nana, stay here for lunch. We¡¯ll cook a seafood feast for you. ¡± Elisa sent them an excessive amount of seafood. Serenity wanted to ask Old Mrs. York to bring some back with her so her inws could have a taste as well. Although she and Zachary were not living together, and she had never been to his old home, Serenity felt she had to offer good food to her inws so they remembered her presence. ¡°Sure. I¡¯d stay even if you didn¡¯t ask me. I often eat alone at home, so even the most delicious food doesn¡¯t taste as good. You can make more. I¡¯1l call Zachary and ask him toe over for lunch. ¡± Serenity opened her mouth to say something, but in the end, she merely hummed. Chapter 239 Chapter 239 Chapter 239 ¨C In a hotel not far from Wilt spoon Hospital, Noah Hunt¡¯s parents knocked on the room door of the eldest son of the Hunt family, Stuart Hunt. When Stuart opened the door and saw his youngest brother with his wife looking worried, he asked with conked, ¡°David, what happened? You two don¡¯t look very good. ¡± ¡°Stuart, Noah hasn¡¯te back since he went out yesterday. We¡¯re worried something might¡¯ve happened to him. ¡± Noah¡¯s father was the youngest among the Hunt siblings, and his parents loved him the most, sothey gave him the name David, which meant beloved. ¡°Did Noah say what he was doing? ¡± As the eldest of the Hunt family, Stuart was good at maintaining hisposure. N?velDrama.Org ? content. David hesitated for a moment and said, Noah said he was going to settle the score with Serenity and make her pay for Mom¡¯s medical bills, but he hasn¡¯t returned since he went out yesterday. His cell phone is turned off too. ¡± Noah¡¯s family did not know that he was being detained in the police station now, and his phone automatically shut down because it ran out of battery. Stuart¡¯s expression darkened instantly, and he scolded his brother and his wife, How could you let Noah go to Serenity by himself? She refused to budge even when the brothers went togetherst time. How would he be able to make her bow ifhe | went alone?¡± | husband, Serenity?¡± Serenity said honestly, I¡¯ve only given him a few sets of clothes, and a miniature tree, maneki-neko, and gold dragon to him. ¡°They¡¯re not worth much. ¡± She did not know if he even wore the clothes she gave him. She had only seen him wear the tie once. If Zachary were to find out that his wife had these thoughts, he would vomit blood. That day, he deliberately went to work wearing the new clothes and tie she gave him. All the executives who saw him that day recognized that he was wearing a differentbel. However, only the gossipy Josh knew the truth while the others did not. Nevertheless, at least they could tell that something was different. On the other hand, Serenity had no inkling for the entire day. She even thought that he did not wear the clothes she gave him. ¡°I won¡¯t send him clothes for now since he won¡¯t ept them anyway. Besides, I don¡¯t know what size he wears. All his clothes are tailored by senior designers. ¡± The clothing designer responsible for Zachary¡¯s daily wear was particrly tight-lipped. Elisa had spent a lot of money trying to pry open his mouth, but she failed each time. _ She had a crush on Zachary for many years, but she still did daughters dearly. Thus, for his brother¡¯s sake, Stuart treated Serenity well when she was a child. Maybe Serenity would listen to him if he went. Stuart proimed that he was good to Serenity when she was young, but that was only in his head. However, even if he did treat her well before, he worked together with Serenity¡¯s grandparents to share his third brother and his wife¡¯s insurance payout after their deaths. He then drove away his two underage nieces and hogged the family property left by his third brother. All those actions had erased any shred of Serenity¡¯s affection for her eldest uncle. Wait here. I¡¯lle with you after I change my clothes. ¡°Stuart, should we call Mike and John too?¡± David thought they would have strength in numbers. Chapter 240 Chapter 240 Chapter 240 -¡°Sure, let¡¯s call them. ¡± Stuart also felt that it was better to have more people on their side and agreed with David to call his son and nephew. Unexpectedly, when David called his eldest nephew, Mike, he received news from Mike instead. ¡°Uncle David, I was just about to call you. Something happened to Noah. ¡± David¡¯s face turned ashen, and he quickly asked, ¡°What happened to Noah? He said he went to ask Serenity for money. Did she beat him up? If that damned girl dares to touch a single hair on my boy, I¡¯ll end her! I¡¯ll go back and dig up her mother¡¯s grave!¡± Serenity¡¯s father was David¡¯s third brother, so David would not dig up his grave. However, his third sister-inw was not rted to him by blood. Since Serenity angered him, he would dig up his third sister-inw¡¯s grave for real. ¡°Noah brought a few punks to intercept Serenity¡¯s car in the middle of the night. They also brought iron bars and wanted to smash her car, but she fought back. The punks and Noah are being detained now. I just got the news too. ¡± ¡°He¡¯s detained? It¡¯s just a conflict between siblings. Why did she call the police? That girl is so cruel. How could she call the cops on Noah? Mike, can you bail Noah out? He¡¯s still young. He¡¯s just a child. He¡¯ll be traumatized by this. ¡± When David thought that his niece had called the cops to arrest his son, he was first extremely furious. Then, he was | worried that his son would be frightened and thought of husband, Serenity?¡± Serenity said honestly, ¡°I¡¯ve only given him a few sets of clothes, and a miniature tree, maneki-neko, and gold dragon to him. ¡°They¡¯re not worth much. ¡± She did not know if he even wore the clothes she gave him. She had only seen him wear the tie once. If Zachary were to find out that his wife had these thoughts, he would vomit blood. That day, he deliberately went to work wearing the new clothes and tie she gave him. All the executives who saw him that day recognized that he was wearing a differentbel. However, only the gossipy Josh knew the truth while the others did not. Nevertheless, at least they could tell that something was different. On the other hand, Serenity had no inkling for the entire day. She even thought that he did not wear the clothes she gave him. ¡°I won¡¯t send him clothes for now since he won¡¯t ept them anyway. Besides, I don¡¯t know what size he wears. All his clothes are tailored by senior designers. ¡± The clothing designer responsible for Zachary¡¯s daily wear was particrly tight-lipped. Elisa had spent a lot of money trying to pry open his mouth, but she failed each time. _ She had a crush on Zachary for many years, but she still did hundreds of thousands in medical expenses. What could they do if Serenity refused to fork out the money? They went through with the n they came up with, but what was the result? It backfired on them. ¡°I. can¡¯t persuade him. Mike, are we going to bail Noah out first?¡± ¡°Yeah, let¡¯s bail Noah out first and find out if he injured Serenity. If she¡¯s injured, you have to bring a small gift and visit her. Apologize to her and ask her not to press charges against Noah, or he¡¯d get into even more trouble later. ¡± Mike was someone who had experienced the world by doing business, so he was much more rational than his youngest uncle. When Noah¡¯s mother heard Mike, she scolded, ¡°Serenity got my son arrested, but you want us to apologize to her? No way! I¡¯ll get even with her! I¡¯m going to smash up her store and rip her face off. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. 1 don¡¯t care who¡¯s supporting her from the shadows, and I don¡¯t care about ruining my reputation. ¡± Their reputation was already ruined anyway. The people in the vige dug up old scores and pointed fingers at the Hunt family. In her opinion, the vigers only dared to use them of how heartless they were back then because Old Mrs. Hunt was sick , And hospitalized now. Otherwise, the entire Hunt family would be able to stir the entire vige up. No one would dare talk about them! Want to Full list click here, Married at First Sight Novel and you can also Chapter 241 Chapter 241 Chapter 241 ¨C Mike hung up the phone, ignoring his aunt¡¯s scolding. He then let out a long sigh. He seriously felt he was unlucky because Serenity was unharmed even after he got help from so many people. Mike also felt that Serenity had a backer, but he did not know who that was. one of the mediators were willing to help Mike, which indicated that Serenity¡¯s backer must be someone powerful in Wilt spoon. Through their investigation, Mike also did not notice that Serenity and Liberty knew any influential figures. Although Liberty¡¯s husband was a manager in argepany, he was just an employee. Mike had no idea what kind of job Serenity¡¯s husband had for a living, but he found out from the townspeople that Serenity¡¯s husband only drove a national car worth around one hundred and twenty thousand dors. Any of the Hunts¡® scooters was better than the car belonging to Serenity¡¯s husband. This showed that Serenity¡¯s husband was not doing so well. If Mike were to guess who Serenity¡¯s backer was, it would be Serenity¡¯s best friend, Ms. Sox, who was born and raised in Wiltspoon. The Saxes were rich, and Mike heard that her aunt married into an affluent family. Was that Sox girl helping Serenity? Serenity thought her money¨Chungry rtives would definitely look for her since she called. the police to get Noah arrested. Thus, she was mentally prepared. However, Serenity waited until noon and did not see any of her annoying rtives. Grandma May invited Zachary for lunch over a call. When Zachary received the call from his nana, he had already left the office in his exclusive car and was heading to Wilt spoon Hotel for lunch. Josh drove his car behind Zachary¡¯s because they agreed to have lunch together. ¡°Nana. ¡± Zachary answered his nana¡¯s call. Before she could speak, he asked in a low voice, ¡°Did you get. the answer to the question that you were supposed to ask on my behalf?¡± ¡°What question? Was I supposed to ask someone something?¡± Grandma May could not recall. Zachary¡¯s car screeched to a stop. His expression remained unchanged, and he continued to talk to his nana. After a moment of silence, he said, ¡°I wanted you to ask Serenity what time she arrived homest night, but you didn¡¯t give me an answer all morning.Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡± Jim turned his head to see his boss talking to the Old Mrs. He quickly grabbed the opportunity to tell Zachary, ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s Ms. Stone again. ¡± Elisa Stone had waited at the entrance of York Corporation all morning so she could invite Zachary to a meal and give him a gift. This time, Elisa learned her lesson and did not use her car to block his car so it would not get damaged again. Elisa blocked Zachary¡¯s exclusive car with her body, so it would not affect other cars from entering or leaving. Zachary did not even look at Elisa who was outside the car. Grandma Mayughed and said over the phone, ¡°I totally forgot about this question! But never mind, you can ask her yourselfter. Are you off work? Come over for lunch now. I¡¯m still in Serenity¡¯s store. She¡¯s busy at the moment, preparing a seafood feast in the kitchen. ¡± Zachary thought about his conflict with Serenity during this time. He had deleted her WhatsApp, and she blocked his number. To be honest, Zachary had never had his number blocked since he owned his first mobile. phone and got a mobile phone number. Serenity was the first person to block him. ¡°I¡¯m not going. Josh and I are going to our hotel for lunch. ¡± Zachary rejected Grandma May¡¯s lunch invitation. He felt that having lunch at Serenity¡¯s store would mean yielding to Serenity. Although he thought that he was at fault and that they were at an impasse, Zachary found it difficult to concede. As Grandma May would say, Zachary was as stubborn as a mule. ¡°No! I already told Serenity that you¡¯reing over for lunch and asked her to cook your share. If you don¡¯te, the extra food will be wasted. Hurry over to this seafood feast. They¡¯re fresh from the sea! That Elisa girl brought them back for Serenity. ¡± Hearing this, Zachary frowned and asked coldly, ¡°Why did she give Serenity so much. seafood?¡± ¡°Hehe, because of you. I¡¯ll tell you a secret¡­ Serenity is helping Elisa to pursue you. Haha! Zack, don¡¯t you think it¡¯s crazy? This is the first time I¡¯ve encountered such a situation!¡± Grandma May went outside the bookstore to talk to Zachary so Serenity and Liberty would not overhear. Chapter 242 Chapter 242 Chapter 242 ¨C Liberty returned to the bookstore and had another unsessful day at job hunting. Zachary was speechless when he heard what his grandmother told him. His grandmother sounded like she was gloating. ¡°I won¡¯t talk nonsense with you. Juste over for lunch now. Otherwise, I¡¯ll tell Serenity that you¡¯re the heir to York Corporation! Don¡¯t try me. I found you a way to break this stalemate, but you don¡¯t want to budge. By the way, I¡¯ll tell you another secret. The gift that Elisa wants to give you is from Serenity. You¡¯ll only know what it is when you ept it. ¡± Zachary¡¯s face turned even darker. His grandmother promised him that she would not interfere in his affairs with Serenity, but she threatened him by saying she would reveal his real identity to Serenity. Zachary hung up the call, but Grandma May did not care. She was also about to end the call anyway. ¡°Mr. York, Ms. Stone refuses to give way,¡± the driver turned his head and said to Zachary. Zachary was silent for a minute. Suddenly, he opened the door to get out of the car. Elisa was ted to see Zachary getting out of the car and immediately went forward with the gift box that contained the two phoenixes. Her beautiful big eyes stared at Zachary¡¯s handsome face fondly. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Even though Zachary looked grim and indifferent, it did not affect his charm. He was utterly handsome and cool!Elisa fell in love with Zachary¡¯s appearance. ¡°Mr. York, this is for you. Thank you for helping me this morning. I don¡¯t like to owe favors, so since you helped me, I owe you one. May I invite you for lunch to repay your kindness?¡± Elisa handed the box to Zachary with both hands and looked at Zachary expectantly. She felt that Serenity¡¯s idea was pretty useful. Since Elisa started using Serenity¡¯s method of chasing men, Zachary was willing to get out of his car to meet her. Zachary stared at the box. Grandma May said Elisa bought this gift from Serenity. It must be one of Serenity¡¯s craftworks. Serenity gave Elisa the lucky cat that she promised him thest time. When he found out and got angry, Serenity promised to give him a golden dragon on top of the lucky cat, but he still did not receive the gifts. Did Serenity give them to Elisa again? With this doubt in mind, Zachary somehow took the gift box that Elisa handed over. He opened the box and retrieved the contents from the box right before Elisa. here were two phoenixes. ¡°Mr. York, do you like them? I think these two phoenixes are magnificent and lifelike. ¡± It was a big surprise to Elisa that Zachary would take the gift box and open it. Elisa grinned and looked at Zachary with admiration in her eyes. Zachary thought, ¡®At least Serenity didn¡¯t give Elisa my gifts. ¡® He stuffed the two phoenixes back into the box and threw the box back to Elisa before he turned around and returned to his car. Zachary ignored Elisa¡¯s lunch invitation to repay his favor. ¡°Jim, drag her aside!¡± Zachary instructed Jim in a deep voice as he got back to his car. Jimplied. He easily dragged Elisa aside. Elisa was so furious that she kept stomping on Jim¡¯s feet, which made Jim wince in pain. Chapter 243 Chapter 243 Chapter 243 ¨C Zachary¡¯s exclusive car drove away from the entrance of York Corporation. Jim only let go of Elisa after Zachary¡¯s car was out of sight. Elisa turned around to p Jim. Jim quickly grabbed her wrist and warned her with a cold expression, ¡°Ms. Stone, I don¡¯t discriminate between men and women in a fight. ¡± ¡°Let me go! I dare you to hit me!¡± Jim flung Elisa¡¯s hand away fiercely and said coldly, ¡°I won¡¯t hit you if you don¡¯t hit me. Ms. Stone, if you¡¯re rude to me, I¡¯ll treat you the way you treat me. ¡± Although Jim was a bodyguard, he did not feel inferior to others. His boss treated the bodyguards like brothers. If Elisa used her identity to threaten and hit Jim, Jim would not be polite to her. ¡°You!¡± Elisa was shocked by Jim¡¯s cold attitude. Unlike Serenity, Elisa did not know martial arts. She only used her status to act as she pleased in Wiltspoon and had never met another youngdy who was more powerful than her. That was why Elisa could do whatever she wanted. Jim was not bothered to bicker with Elisa. He said coldly, ¡°Stop pestering my boss. He doesn¡¯t like you!¡± After speaking, Jim strode toward the bodyguard¡¯s car that was waiting for him. Elisa¡¯s face turned red and gloomy with rage because of what Jim said. It took a while. for her toe to her senses. As the bodyguard¡¯s car drove past, she yelled, ¡°Who do you think you are to talk to me like this?! Don¡¯t you know who I am?¡± The guards on duty in the security room heard Elisa¡¯s enraged remarks and thought to themselves, Jim only treated Ms. Stone like that because he knew who she was¡­¡® Elisa was the younger sister of Stone Group¡¯s CEO and was adored by her family. It was not an exaggeration to say that she was loved by everyone because of her powerful identity. However, the employees of York Corporation knew that Stone Group was their rival, so why should they bother to please Elisa Stone? It was impossible for Zachary York to ept Elisa¡¯s pursuit. Thus, no one in York Corporation was afraid of offending Elisa. Zachary¡¯s exclusive car stopped at a red light. Zachary called Josh. Josh looked at the car in front of him and anwered the phone with augh. He said, ¡± I¡¯ll be able to hear you if you just wind down your window, turn back, and shout. ¡± ¡°Josh, I¡¯ll have to cancel our lunch. You can have lunch at the hotel by yourself. ¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°I¡¯m going to apany my grandma. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She called me just now. ¡± Zachary wanted to save face and did not say he was going to Serenity¡¯s bookstore for lunch. Josh said with a smile, ¡°I can apany Grandma May for lunch too. I don¡¯t think she¡¯ll mind my presence!¡± Grandma May was an easygoing person and was affable to the younger generation. She would treat Zachary¡¯s friend¨Ccum¨Cemployee like her own grandson. ¡°Not today. ¡± ¡°Oh-¡± Josh dragged his response and seemed to have guessed the reason. Smiled and said, ¡° Okay then. I¡¯ll go to the hotel by myself. ¡± After exining to his friend, Zachary ordered the driver, ¡°Send me back to Bryn field. ¡± During their stalemate, Zachary and Serenity had been living separately. Zachary¡¯s national MPV that he bought specifically to deceive Serenity was still parked in Bryn field. He did not ask anyone to drive that car to the office as he usually did. Thus, Zachary went over to drive the national MPV. The driverplied with his order. Ten minutester, the driver sent Zachary back to Bryn field. Zachary drove the national MPV and went straight to Wilt spoon School. When Zachary arrived at Serenity¡¯s bookstore, the students who just got out of school were picked up by their parents. The bookstores and convenience stores in front of Wilt spoon School resumed their peace after the bustle. Chapter 244 Chapter 244 Chapter 244 ¨C ¡°Zack, you¡¯re here!¡± Grandma May came out of the store when she heard the sound of a car outside. She saw her grandson and walked over with a smile. Seeing that his grandson got out of the car empty¨Chanded, she lowered her voice in dissatisfaction and said, ¡°You came here like this?¡± ¡°How else should I show up?¡± Grandma May was speechless. Zachary was truly an unromantic blockhead! Grandma May had to be the bad guy and nagged Zachary for two to three months, which annoyed him so much that he promised to marry Serenity, ending his bachelorhood. Otherwise, with his personality, Zachary would probably still be a bachelor in his forties. ¡°Don¡¯t you know how to buy a bunch of flowers or some gifts for Serenity?¡± ¡°She doesn¡¯t need it. The balcony at home is full of flowers. She can enjoy them whenever she likes. ¡± Grandma May wanted to kick Zachary, but she held back. That was because if she kicked her biological grandson, she would feel heartbroken too. ¡°Zachary¡¯s here. ¡± Liberty smiled, walked out with her son in her arms, and asked her brother¨C inw to go inside. Zachary greeted Liberty politely. When he saw Sonny stretching out his hand toward him, Zachary reached out to carry Sonny. The little guy greeted him in a sweet voice. ¡°What a good boy, Sonny!¡± Zachary did not like to deal with Hank, but he adored Sonny because this little guy was super lovable. Out of the corner of his eyes, Zachary saw Liberty¡¯s fleshy face and suddenly thought of his encounter with Hank in his hotel. The bodyguard said that there was a young beautiful woman beside Hank, and the two were affectionate with each other. and Was Hank cheating on Liberty? Zachary did not witness it personally. The bodyguard also only thought the man looked like Hank and did not stop to look carefully. Zachary had doubts in his heart, but he did not tell Liberty about it. He was afraid that if he got the man wrong and told Liberty about it, he would ruin. their rtionship. Jasmine cleaned up the store, and made room for a table which she brought out. When she saw Zachary, she said hello while keeping her hands busy as she wiped the table. Zachary did not see Serenity and guessed that she was still busy in the kitchen. Did Elisa buy that much seafood? ¡°Zack, give Sonny to me and go into the kitchen to see if Serenity needs any help. ¡± Grandma May drove her grandson into the kitchen. Liberty and Jasmine heard the olddy and were tactful not to follow so the young couple could have some privacy. Jasmine was aware that Serenity and her husband were at an impasse and hoped that within these few short minutes, Serenity could exin it clearly to Zachary. Jasmine did not want Zachary to think she was trying to be the matchmaker for Serenity and Shawn. Jasmine swore that she had never thought about matchmaking her best friend and cousin. She also knew that Serenity only treated Shawn as a brother. They had a three¨Cyear age difference, which could be considered a small generation gap. Zachary nced at his grandmother, who was now carrying Sonny, and she quietly pinched the back of his hand, motioning for him to talk to Serenity. Grandma May had already paved the way for him, and all he had to do was follow through. Why was he motionless? Feeling awkward, Zachary always felt that his grandmother was forcing him to yield to Serenity without showing it. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Zachary had no choice but to silently walk into the small kitchen. Serenity finished cooking all the dishes. When Zachary entered the kitchen, he could smell the pleasant aroma of food. Zachary instantly felt hungry. Serenity was stunned when she turned around and saw Zachary. Chapter 245 Chapter 245 Chapter 245 ¨C Zachary quietly looked at Serenity. He had not seen her for two days and suddenly felt that he liked seeing her face. The couple stared at each other. In the end, Serenity broke the silence. ¡°Wash your hands and help me bring the dishes out. They¡¯re ready to serve. ¡± Zachary neither refused nor explicitly agreed. He pursed his thin lips and asked in a low voice, ¡°Why did you buy so much seafood?¡± That was because he did not receive any notice of expenditure from the bank. Did Serenity buy all the seafood from her own pockets? Although they were at an impasse, Zachary still felt that it was his duty as a husband to support the family. ¡°How much did they cost? I¡¯ll transfer the money to youter. I agreed to pay for the living expenses. ¡± Serenity turned to look at the seafood feast she prepared. She then smiled and exined, ¡°It didn¡¯t cost a cent. Ms. Stone brought these back from her beach vacation and gave me aplenty. When you send Nana hometer, you can bring some back to your parents. They¡¯re all very fresh. ¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face twitched slightly. It turned out Elisa was the one who gave Serenity all these. Elisa and Serenity were supposed to be love rivals, but because Zachary had deliberately concealed his identity, the twodies seemed to have some interaction. It seemed that they were even bing good friends. ¡°We shouldn¡¯t receive gifts for no reason. Ms.Stone gave you so much seafood, so we shouldn¡¯t owe her a favor. I¡¯ll transfer some money to you. Buy something for Ms.Stone and consider it a return gift for all the seafood. ¡± In short, Zachary just wanted to transfer money to Serenity. That was because the couple deleted each other¡¯s WhatsApp. He did not want to admit to it by taking the initiative to add Serenity back, so he decided to transfer her some money. As long as Serenity was willing to ept his money transfer, she would have to give him her ount number. That way, he could openly add his wife on WhatsApp without shame. Serenity did not think as much as Zachary and downright rejected Zachary¡¯s offer. She said, ¡°Ms.Stone and I are already friends, so don¡¯t mind the courtesy. If I¡¯m calctive. with her, she¡¯ll be angry and think that I¡¯m looking down on her. ¡°Also, I taught Ms.Stone a trick, so Ms.Stone giving me all this seafood can bet considered payment for me being her rtionship consultant. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Wash your hands quickly and help serve the dishes. The seafood won¡¯t be nice when it gets cold. ¡± Serenity took a te of shrimps and went around Zachary to go out. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary called out to her in a low voice. Serenity stopped, turned to look at him, and asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Zachary looked at her but he was stumped for words. Seeing that Serenity was impatient and was about to leave again, he did not say anything to reconcile their rtionship. He just said, ¡°Nothing. ¡± Serenity red at him, turned around, and walked out of the kitchen. Zachary was the only one left in the small kitchen. He was a little frustrated. After a minute of silence, he finally washed his hands and helped to serve the dishes. Elisa gave Serenity many kinds of seafood. Serenity cooked a portion of each, which filled the table. Jasmine also bought a few bottles of drinks. Everyone sat around the table and had a great meal. Even Sonny enjoyed his meal. Sonny liked shrimps, but he was too young to peel the shells, so his mother had to peel them for him. Serenity loved her nephew and felt sorry for her sister, who was exhausted from walking around all morning looking for a job. Thus, she put on disposable gloves, peeled the shells for her nephew, and said to her sister, ¡°Liberty, eat some. I¡¯ll take care of Sonny. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine. You can eat. ¡± Liberty took some fish for her son and asked him to eat some fish instead of just shrimp. Grandma May admired the strong bond between the Hunt sisters Chapter 246 Chapter 246 Chapter 246 ¨C Grandma May noticed her grandson was busy eating and was not attentive to her granddaughter¨Cinw, so she quietly nudged her grandson¡¯s foot under the table. Zachary looked at his grandmother with his dark and innocent eyes, pretending to be clueless about what his grandmother meant by that nudge. Grandma May was frustrated. In the beginning, Grandma May and her husband tried their best to raise their eldest grandson as their sessor and poured all their efforts into him, but why were the results so unsatisfactory? Grandma May was no doubt satisfied with Zachary¡¯s capability. York Corporation soared to the top and developed faster and better than Stone Group after it was handed over to Zachary. However, in terms of love life, Grandma May felt that her grandson had a negative EQ. ¡°Peel some shrimp for Serenity. ¡± Grandma May had no choice but to remind her grandson in a low voice. Zachary did not know how to seize such a good opportunity. He pursed his thin lips and thought, ¡®She has hands¡­¡® Grandma May knew Zachary well because she raised him. As soon as Zachary pursed his lips, she already knew what he was thinking. She red at her grandson. After receiving his nana¡¯s threatening gaze, Zachary quietly took out a pair of disposable gloves from the box, put them on, stretched out his long hands, and put down the te of shrimps in front of him. He said softly, ¡°Serenity, you can eat. N?velDrama.Org ? content. I¡¯ll peel the shrimp for Sonny. ¡± Grandma May was speechless. She wanted Zachary to be considerate to Serenity, but why was he being considerate to Sonny? hat a hopeless punk! Serenity agreed to let Zachary do the tough work and took off her disposable gloves. Zachary was quick to peel the shrimp. Chapter 247 Chapter 247 Chapter 247 ¨C police station now. ¡± Serenity was not injured, so those gangsters were just detained. ¡°What are the Hunts trying to do again?¡± Zachary instructed Josh to arrange for someone to watch the Hunts¡® movements, so he would know what they were up to before Serenity. ¡°They want to bail Noah out. ¡± Zachary exined, ¡°He gathered a bunch of thugs to scare Serenity. If Serenity didn¡¯t know how to fight, her car would be smashed, and she would be injured. She might even get robbed. They were clearly trying to carjack her, so detention is too light of a punishment. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡± Joshughed. ¡°I can¡¯t believe your wife can fight pretty well. Okay, I got it. ¡± Zachary did not say anything when his friend praised Serenity¡¯s fighting skills. ¡°Are you still at your wife¡¯s store? Did you two reconcile? Hurry up and coax her. Girls are easily coaxed. Just get her two bouquets of flowers or something she likes. If you don¡¯t know what she likes, you can be tacky and transfer her some money. Give her more and make it rain! I guarantee she¡¯ll forgive you. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m on the way back to the office. I need to drive now. Bye!¡± Zachary hung up and thought, ¡®What does Serenity like?¡® He did have the chance to know her well enough to know what she liked, except that she was a foodie who loved to eat. Not long after they got their marriage license, Serenity apanied Jasmine to a dinner party. Zachary¡¯s bodyguard saw Serenity and told him that the twodies huddled in a corner all night, eating and drinking. They slipped away after they had their share of food and drinks without any intentions to befriend the rich people there. Chapter 248 Chapter 248 Chapter 248 ¨C No wonder Jasmine and Serenity were best friends. They were two peas in a pod. The tackiest way to coax a girl was to give her money. When Zachary was in the store, he told Serenity they could not ept Elisa¡¯s seafood for free. Thus, he wanted to transfer money to Serenity and ask her to give themoney to Elisa so as not to owe Elisa a favor. However, Serenity refuted so righteously that he was speechless. They deleted each other¡¯s WhatsApp, and Serenity blocked his number. If Serenity could not reply to his messages, how could Zachary send her money and. make it rain? Zachary regretted that he acted petty. Just because of a little misunderstanding, he had a cold war with his wife and deleted her WhatsApp. N?velDrama.Org ? content. He did not know how he could add her back. At Waltham Electronics, Hank came out of the general manager¡¯s office with a triumphant smile. When Jessica saw her bosse back with a bright smile, she immediately followed him into the office and closed the door. ¡°Mr. Brown, what did the boss tell you? You look very happy. ¡± Hank put down the documents that had been reviewed and signed by the boss before he reached out to grab Jessica¡¯s arm, and pulled her closer. He embraced her slender waist. and said with a smile, ¡°Jessica, take a guess. ¡°Is he giving you a promotion or a raise?¡± Hank shook his head. There were two deputy general managers above him. One of the two deputy general managers was the boss¡¯s friend, and the other was the boss¡¯s younger brother. Thus, it was impossible for Hank to be promoted to deputy general manager. Hank was well content to be a manager. He would not get a sry increment either. At most, he would get an extra bonus. Now that he could make extra money, he did not care about the bonus. ¡°You¡¯re so annoying! I don¡¯t want to guess anymore. Hurry up and tell me. What¡¯s the good news?¡± Jessica looked at him coquettishly. Hank kissed her on the cheek and said in a hoarse voice, ¡°I¡¯ll tell you if you let me kiss. you. ¡± ¡°Ugh, didn¡¯t you just kiss me?¡± Hank looked at her affectionately. Jessica saw Hank¡¯s yearning look, so she finally lowered her head and kissed his lips. passionately. After their French kiss, Hank said, ¡°The boss didn¡¯t give me a raise or a promotion, but gave me an invitation to a business reception and asked me to attend in his stead tonight. He said the elites in the business world will attend this event. ¡°This shows that the boss trusts me. I¡¯ll have more opportunities to meet other bigwigs, which will be of great help to me in the future. ¡± Hank was happy that the boss trusted him to give him an opportunity to enter high society. In the boss¡¯s words, Hank would not be able to participate in this event if the boss and the two deputies could not attend. That really ttered him. ¡°Jessica, please apany me to the event this evening. The reception is held at Wilt spoon Hotel, which won¡¯t be open to the public tonight. ¡± In order to please Jessica, Hank often brought Jessica to the Wilt spoon Hotel with him. Thus, they were quite familiar with the city¡¯s most luxurious hotel, but that could notpare to attending the reception tonight as a VIP. Hearing this, Jessica looked ted and said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re right! The boss gave you this opportunity because he thinks highly of you and trusts you. Do you really want to take me there? Why don¡¯t you bring your wife?¡± Usually, everyone would bring their spouse to attend such asions. Of course, some bosses would go with their secretaries. At the mention of Liberty, the smile on Hank¡¯s face disappeared. He said with disgust, ¡°I would rather go alone than bring Liberty with me. ¡± Chapter 249 Chapter 249 Chapter 249 ¨C No wonder Jasmine and Serenity were best friends. They were two peas in a pod. The tackiest way to coax a girl was to give her money. When Zachary was in the store, he told Serenity they could not ept Elisa¡¯s seafood for free. Thus, he wanted to transfer money to Serenity and ask her to give the money to Elisa so as not to owe Elisa a favor. owever, Serenity refuted so righteously that he was speechless. They deleted each other¡¯s WhatsApp, and Serenity blocked his number. If Serenity could not reply to his messages, how could Zachary send her money and. make it rain? Zachary regretted that he acted petty. Just because of a little misunderstanding, he had a cold war with his wife and deleted her WhatsApp. He did not know how he could add her back. At Waltham Electronics, Hank came out of the general manager¡¯s office with a triumphant smile. When Jessica saw her bosse back with a bright smile, she immediately followed him into the office and closed the door. ¡°Mr. Brown, what did the boss tell you? You look very happy. ¡± Hank put down the documents that had been reviewed and signed by the boss before he reached out to grab Jessica¡¯s arm, and pulled her closer. He embraced her slender waist. and said with a smile, ¡°Jessica, take a guess. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡°Is he giving you a promotion or a raise?¡± Hank shook his head. There were two deputy general managers above him. One of the two deputy general managers was the boss¡¯s friend, and the other was the boss¡¯s younger brother. Thus, it was impossible for Hank to be promoted to deputy general manager. Hank was well content to be a manager. He would not get a sry increment either. At most, he would get an extra bonus. Now that he could make extra money, he did not care about the bonus. ¡°You¡¯re so annoying! I don¡¯t want to guess anymore. Hurry up and tell me. What¡¯s the good news?¡± Jessica looked at him coquettishly. Hank kissed her on the cheek and said in a hoarse voice, ¡°I¡¯ll tell you if you let me kiss. you. ¡± ¡°Ugh, didn¡¯t you just kiss me?¡± Hank looked at her affectionately. Jessica saw Hank¡¯s yearning look, so she finally lowered her head and kissed his lips. passionately. After their French kiss, Hank said, ¡°The boss didn¡¯t give me a raise or a promotion, but gave me an invitation to a business reception and asked me to attend in his stead tonight. He said the elites in the business world will attend this event. ¡°This shows that the boss trusts me. I¡¯ll have more opportunities to meet other bigwigs, which will be of great help to me in the future. ¡± Hank was happy that the boss trusted him to give him an opportunity to enter high society. In the boss¡¯s words, Hank would not be able to participate in this event if the boss and the two deputies could not attend. That really ttered him. ¡°Jessica, please apany me to the event this evening. The reception is held at Wilt spoon Hotel, which won¡¯t be open to the public tonight. ¡± In order to please Jessica, Hank often brought Jessica to the Wilt spoon Hotel with him. Thus, they were quite familiar with the city¡¯s most luxurious hotel, but that could notpare to attending the reception tonight as a VIP. Hearing this, Jessica looked ted and said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re right! The boss gave you this opportunity because he thinks highly of you and trusts you. Do you really want to take me there? Why don¡¯t you bring your wife?¡± Usually, everyone would bring their spouse to attend such asions. Of course, some bosses would go with their secretaries. At the mention of Liberty, the smile on Hank¡¯s face disappeared. He said with disgust, ¡°I would rather go alone than bring Liberty with me. ¡± Chapter 250 Chapter 250 Chapter 250 ¨C Hank immediately stopped working and brought Jessica out. He was the manager, and Jessica was his secretary. Usually, Hank would take Jessica with him whenever he went out for business, so no one would say anything when the two of them left the office together. The janitor saw Hank driving away with Jessica at the entrance of the office and said to an old security guard, ¡°Mr. Brown and Ms. Yates go in and out together all day long. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Is Liberty not worried that Mr. Brown will cheat on her?¡± Liberty used to work in the same office as Hank, so the old employees still remembered her. The old security guard looked at the janitor oddly. After looking around to make sure that no one else was there, the security guard lowered his voice and said to the janitor, ¡°You clean the office every day and go through the whole building. Don¡¯t you know what happened? Mr. Brown and Ms. Yates are having an affair. How could you not know about it?¡± The janitor was surprised and asked with interest, ¡°How do you know?¡± ¡°Anyone with eyes can see it! Ms. Yates always dresses nicely in big brands after work and carries a five¨Cfigure LV bag. With her ie, how can she spend sovishly? Shees from an average family too. ¡°Naturally, her designer clothes, bags, and jewelry were given by Mr. Brown. Some people have also seen the two of them eating supper together after work. Anyway, they¡¯re really intimate with each other. No one will believe them if they say they¡¯re not an item. ¡± The janitor said, ¡°Liberty is kept in the dark about this, right? They invited everyone to their wedding back then, and I still remember how beautiful Liberty was on their wedding day, so much so that people can¡¯t take their eyes off of her. ¡°It¡¯s only been a few short years, but Mr. Brown has a new lover. Men really can¡¯t keep it in their pants when they have money. ¡± She felt sorry for Liberty. ¡°Liberty rarelyes to visit Mr. Brown in the past two years and doesn¡¯t know what¡¯s going on. She probably doesn¡¯t know that Mr. Brown is cheating on her. Ms. Yates isn¡¯t a simple girl. Just wait and see. One day, Ms. Yates will expose this to Liberty and force. Liberty to get a divorce. ¡± The janitor said with a sigh, ¡°We thought Liberty was so blessed to be married to a young and promising young man like Mr. Brown. Our bosses are appreciative of Mr. Brown, so he definitely has a promising future. ¡°Who knew¡­¡± Hank had had a sessful career, but he was no different from those heartless men who abandoned their wives when they got rich and cheated on Liberty. ¡°No one told Liberty about this?¡± The old security guard said, ¡°It¡¯s been so many years since Liberty left thepany. Who will remember her? She couldn¡¯t bring benefits to others, so it¡¯s already nice of them to greet her when they meet her. ¡± Hank was the manager of thepany who was deeply appreciated and trusted by the boss. He could bring more benefits to his colleagues. Thus, everyone would naturally butter up to Hank. Unless Liberty found out or Jessica took the initiative to force Liberty to get a divorce, no one would tell Liberty that Hank was having an affair. This society was too pragmatic. Chapter 251 Chapter 251 Novel Chapter 251 ¨C In the evening, when the work day was about to end, Josh knocked on the door to the CEO¡¯s office and entered, carrying a stack of documents in his arMs. Zachary raised his head and eyed him for a second before he returned to his work. After Josh sat down, Zachary remarked, ¡°What use is your secretary?¡± ¡°She¡¯s pregnant! I¡¯m being considerate of her. I don¡¯t want her to run back and forth. and tire herself out. Her husband mighte looking for me then. So I did it myself. ¡± Josh ced the stack of documents in front of his good friend. ¡°I¡¯ve looked through them. There¡¯s no problem with them, so you just have to sign them. ¡± After he set the documents down, he got up to pour himself a ss of warm water. He sat back down and proceeded to drink his water while looking at the man sitting opposite him. Zachary was extremely handsome. Even if his face was tense all day in a cold and serious expression, it wasn¡¯t enough to mask his handsome exterior. In this age and day where looks were everything, girls and young women would fall for him without fail once they glimpsed at him a few times. Maybe there was an exception, and that was their Mrs. CEO. Josh admired Serenity, hands down. In just a little more than a month, she had managed to coach the most thoroughly iron¨Chard tree of York Corporation that was their CEO into flowering buds, and it even seemed like the buds were about to bloom. And more importantly, Serenity had not fallen for Zachary. How did she manage to protect her heart? Zachary treated her pretty well. Those admirers out there only had a glimpse of Zachary a few times but could not forget him for years after, like Elisa Stone! She was just like that. After being unable to get over him for a few years, she tried to pursue him. On the other hand, you had Zachary treating Serenity so well and even making many exceptions for her, but Serenity could still protect her heart and remained unmoved. That was the part that Josh admired her for. ¡°What are you looking at?¡± Zachary had not raised his head, but he knew his friend was staring at him. ¡°Looking at your handsome face, duh! Zachary, you really are handsome. You¡¯re just bad¨Ctempered and aloof. If you were the gentle and considerate type, people might think you were a woman. If you were a woman, how could anyone else go on? But if you were a woman, I¡¯d do anything to cling to you and marry you. ¡± Zachary flipped through the documents Josh had brought and studied them carefully. After making sure there really were not any problems with the documents, only then. did he sign off on them. ¡°Isn¡¯t there a business reception tonight?¡± ¡°Yeah. Are you nning to go? If you are, the organizer would probably dance in joy for a month and brag about it for the next ten years. ¡± The business reception that was being held at Wilt spoon Hotel that night could not be considered a high¨Clevel reception. The invitees were middlemanagement at big corporations or bosses of smallerpanies. Someone like Zachary, who was at the top of the top, would never take part in a business reception like that of tonight. Of course, if Zachary wanted to go, he could. ¡°If you want to go, I¡¯ll get Mr. Murray to wait for you. ¡± Mr. Murray was a manager of one of the subsidiarypanies under York Corporation. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org Josh had arranged for him to take part in the reception after he analyzed the invitation sent to York Corporation by the organizer. That was because the subsidiary Mr. Murray was managing had just opened recently and still needed towork to get business. Taking part in a business reception and getting to know some of these old managers would smoothen the road before him even if he could not get their business. ¡°I¡¯m not going. I was just asking. ¡± Zachary rarely attended gatherings held by the upper crust, let alone a business. reception like that. He just wanted to go to the hotel to have a drink. ¡°You have something on your mind, or else you wouldn¡¯t have brought it up out of nowhere. ¡± ¡°I want to have a drink or two,¡± Zachary said nonchntly. He had a presidential suite exclusively for his use at the Wilt spoon Hotel, located on the top floor. In the past, if the socializing rante, he would not return home and just stay in the hotel. Chapter 252 Chapter 252 Chapter 252 ¨C ¡°Want toe along?¡± No matter where it was, wherever Zachary lived, there would be arge collection of fine wines. ¡°No, thanks. I¡¯m scared of getting drunk again. When you get drunk, you have your wife to take care of you. I am but a single dog. No one would take care of me even if I got alcohol poisoning and died. ¡± ¡°You make yourself seem so pitiful. You could go on a blind date too and have a shotgun. marriage to get a wife to take care of you. ¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°With you as a precedent, I think I¡¯d better obediently wait for my fate toe around. ¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong with me? I¡¯m doing just fine!¡± ¡°Sure, sure. You¡¯re doing just fine. So much so that your expression hasn¡¯t warmed a single degree for the past few days. Your work efficiency has increased a lot, but you¡¯ve made life harder for those under you. these few days, more and more people have automatically volunteered to work overtime even into the wee hours. ¡± York Corporation would not force its employees to work overtime. As long as they managed to finish their work, they not only did not have to work overtime, they could. even get off work early. However, if their work was not done by the day, they would work overtime on their own ord because that day¡¯s work could not be put off to the next day. Due to the cold war with his wife, Zachary was in a bad mood and directed all of his attention to his work. He was originally already a fast worker, but when all of his attention was focused on his work, his efficiency grew by leaps and bounds. This had him manage to finish three days¡® worth of work in a day. And so the life of those under him was made harder. ¡°Mr. Chaplin¡¯s been so busy he hasn¡¯t even had time to have a drink of water. ¡± Zachary put down his pen. ¡°Have they beenining to you?¡± In York Corporation, Zachary, as the CEO, was naturally a figure feared and respected by everyone. When the employees hadints, they would only dare to make them to Josh, because Josh had some degree ofpassion and was not cold and aloof like Zachary. Plus, Zachary trusted Josh and relied on him heavily, and they were good friends too. Telling Josh was equivalent to letting Zachary know. ¡°No, but I have eyes. Zachary, just listen to me and you¡¯ll be fine. Tonight, buy a present to go home to coax your wife. ¡± Josh inwardly thought with great disdain that if Zachary was like this every day, he would not be able to stand it either. Even he had to fight for the chance to catch his breath. As he said that, he picked up the copper wire tree for a look. Zachary had disyed it on his table. Josh knew that it was given to Zachary by his wife and the reason it was disyed there was that Zachary had fallen for Serenity. But others who had no idea of this would blindly decide to follow the trend and help Serenity¡¯s business. Of course, Zachary, that stubborn and tight¨Clipped man, would never admit that. Josh did not want Zachary to admit that he had fallen for Serenity too quickly either because that would mean there would be no show to watch anymore. It was just too much fun watching the awkward Zachary. Zachary thought, ¡®I have bad friends. ¡® ¡°If you¡¯re that bored, there¡¯s something I need your help to look into. ¡± Josh immediately waved his hands as a ¡°no¡°. ¡°I¡¯m so busy! Really, I¡¯m not bored at all. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org What do you need help with?¡± He was a terrible scandalmonger, and that was how Zachary managed to et him in the palm of his hands. ¡°Help me look into Hank Brown of Waltham Electronics. He¡¯s a manager in Waltham who¡¯s deeply trusted by his boss. ¡± ¡°Why, are you nning on poaching him? No, wait. That name¡¯s kind of familiar. I think he¡¯s¡­ Oh! He¡¯s that brother¨Cinw of yours, right?¡± Josh had a good memory and recalled it right away. He did not want to know too much. It was not his fault that his boss asked him to look. into things all the time! He only knew about it because he had no other choice. ¡°It is him. I suspect he¡¯s having an affair. Get your people topile the evidence of his affair and pass it to me. Don¡¯t let too many people know about this, I¡¯m not 100% sure about this either. ¡± Chapter 253 Chapter 253 Chapter 253 ¨C Josh was not surprised that Hank Brown was having an affair. He said, ¡°That sister¨Cinw of yours changed too much after getting married. After Hank Brown got his promotion, any of the women around him would have been better. than your sister¨Cinw. Now that time has passed, he¡¯ll naturally start to be repelled by her. ¡± Zachary¡¯s gaze was cold, and so was his tone of voice. ¡°Why did she change so much? Because she loved him and wasn¡¯t afraid of her body changing. She gave birth to a child for him, and after that, to let him focus on his work, she brought the kid up and took care of the whole household alone. She gave up her youth and her beauty for him. He could also attest to her looking different before and after her marriage. Liberty had. changed a lot. She should at least lose some weight. But that was not an excuse for Hank to have an affair. Ruthlessness had long lurked within Hank, but it just had not had the chance to make its appearance before this. Now that he was doing well in his job, he was arrogant and started to look down on his wife, treating her with disgust. If Hank really thought Liberty was too ugly in this state, he could have asked her to lose. some weight. Liberty still had some feelings for him. She surely would have worked hard to lose weight if had asked her to. Hank instead sought to oppress Liberty in every aspect of their marriage and lives together, finding fault in her at every turn and even suggesting that they split their household expenses by halves. Did Hank not know that Liberty was not working at the moment and had no ie to speak of? ¡°That¡¯s true. A good, principled man wouldn¡¯t have changed his heart even if his wife. became a two¨Chundred¨Cpound fatty. ¡± A faithful man would not have had an affair because their wife became ugly or gained weight. When it came down to it, Hank was sick of Liberty. It was possible he had deliberately made Liberty gain weight so he would have an excuse to be disgusted by her and have an affair. ¡°Make sure Hank Brown doesn¡¯t find out about this. ¡± ¡°Rx! I¡¯m the one handling it. Do you still not trust me to do the job well? Unless my men want him to know, we¡¯d have dug it all up to eighteen generations back in his family tree and he¡¯d still have no clue about it, ¡± Josh said as a guarantee, ¡°Zachary, this is a pretty good idea of yours. When you hand the evidence of Hank Brown¡¯s affair over to your wife, she¡¯ll definitely be grateful to you for it and then you guys can finally make up and be like how you were before. ¡± The corner of Zachary¡¯s mouth spasmed. ¡°Be like how we were before? When we first. got to know each other, I couldn¡¯t even remember her name. ¡± Josh was speechless. Alright, that was not the right thing to say. Having asked Josh to look into Hank Brown, Zachary passed the stack of documents he had dealt with and ndly said, ¡°You can get off work now. ¡± ¡°I want to, but I still have a business engagement to attend tonight. ¡± Zachary was speechless. Right, he had to go to a business engagement too. When Zachary discussed business others, it would usually either be in thepany or in his presidential suite at Wilt spoon Hotel. Fine. He did not have to go to the hotel to drink tonight. He could drink as much as he wanted at the business engagement. Serenity gave some of the seafood Elisa had given her to her sister to bring home to eat. She gave some to Jasmine too. Although Jasmine¡¯s family did notck good things and ate seafood every day, she happily epted it because her good friend was giving it to her. Just as Cullum York arrived to pick Grandma May up, Serenity lugged the biggest bag of seafood out. When he saw his sister¨Cinw lugging a big bag with difficulty, he hurriedly got out of the car and rushed forward to take it from her. ¡°Serenity, this is so heavy. You could ask us to help carry it for you. ¡± It would not do to tire out his sister¨Cinw. ¡°That¡¯s right! I told you that you didn¡¯t have to. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Let Cullum do it, men like them are stronger. ¡± Grandma May said. She thought to herself, ¡®Look at how Cullum is, he knows how to be considerate of others. It¡¯s just that iceberg Zack who doesn¡¯t know how to. ¡®Sigh¡­ How worrying. ¡± Grandma May acknowledged to herself that this was worrying, but not a hint of it showed on her face. Her eldest grandson had provided her front seat tickets to a truly entertaining show, and she was enjoying it thoroughly. She was not exactly worried. That simply did not exist. Chapter 254 Chapter 254 Chapter 254 ¨C ¡°Serenity, what¡¯s all this?¡± Cullum had detected the smell of seafood. ¡°It¡¯s seafood. A friend of mine brought it back after holidaying by the beach. She gave me a lot. They¡¯re all fresh, and your brother and I can¡¯t eat that much, so I¡¯m giving some to you guys to bring home and eat. ¡± Cullum stole a nce at his nana. Seeing that she was not declining it, he said, ¡°This is a lot. ¡± Seafood was something their familycked the least. However, since it was given to him by his sister¨Cinw, he best helped bring them home. ¡°Nana, don¡¯t forget to give everyone a portion to try. ¡± Serenity had meticulously prepared a portion for each family unit, contained in individuals. After getting home, all Grandma May had to do was to hand it out portion by portion. They were equally divided. ¡°Alright, I will. ¡± Grandma May waited for Callum to put the seafood in the trunk before getting in the car. She then said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity, I texted Zack earlier, telling him toe over and eat with you before going back to thepany to work. ¡°He should already be on his way over. Callum works at the samepany and Callum¡¯s already here. You should hurry and make dinner. You don¡¯t have to send us. off. ¡± Serenity was speechless for a moment. ¡°Nana, you should have said so earlier. I was nning to heat up the leftovers from lunch and there¡¯s only enough for myself. ¡± ¡°If you start preparing dinner now, you¡¯ll still make it in time. Go on! Zack always works superte. Cook a few extra dishes for him and make sure he fills his stomach,¡± Grandma May said. Serenity could not say no to Grandma May¡¯s face. After sending her off, Serenity was left alone in the bookshop. She hurriedly picked up her phone to text Zachary to tell him not toe over because she was too lazy to cook for him, but only remembered that she had deleted his number after opening her messages. No, wait! He deleted her number first. After thinking about it, Serenity decided to unblock Zachary¡¯s number. If Zachary¡¯s phone number had a soul, it would have thought, ¡®After gettinglocked into the darkness, I can finally see the light again. ¡® Serenity then called Zachary. His phone rang. Right at the doorstep of her bookshop. Zachary picked up her call anyway. The fact that she called him had let him know that she had unblocked him. ¡°Serenity. ¡±Zachary¡¯s voice was rich, low, and had a maism to it. serenity thought to herself that if she had a voice fetish, she would definitely all hard for Zachary after hearing his voice. Luckily, she did not have a voice fetish, but that did stop her from liking the sound of his voice. ¡°What¡¯s up? ¡±I wanted to tell you not toe over anymore. I¡¯m toozy to cook again, but since you¡¯re already here, forget it. I¡¯ll go get a portion of white rice takeaway and heat up the leftovers from lunch. We¡¯ll just make do for this meal. ¡± Serenity came out of her shop and hung up when she saw Zachary. ¡°Do you want anything else to eat? I¡¯ll help get some takeout of whatever you want to eat. ¡± Zachary moved the phone away from his ear and stuffed it into his trouser pocket. He did his best to make his expression a little gentler and his voice alittle less cold. ¡°Just a portion of white rice is enough. There¡¯s no need to get anything else. ¡± ¡°Alright. Are you in a rush to go back to work? If not, help me look after the shop for a bit. I¡¯ll head over to the restaurant nearby to get the rice. Help me heat up the food too. ¡± Zachary was silent for a while before he gloomily agreed. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org ¡°Okay. ¡± In order to make up with his wife, the great Zachary York had to eat leftovers. Chapter 255 Chapter 255 Chapter 255 ¨C Serenity got in her car and sped off. Zachary watched her go before walking into the bookshop. He took a look at the materials that she had not put away yet. He could not make sense of it, so he turned away and went into the kitchen. He washed the wok and put a little water in it before cing the leftovers from lunch into the wok, then turned on the gas to heat it up. Out of boredom, he casually opened the fridge and saw that it was stuffed full of seafood. N?velDrama.Org ? content. They were all given by Elisa Stone. Elisa Stone was pretty generous to Serenity, even dragging a carful of seafood back for her. Thinking of how Serenity taught Elisa how to pursue him and that being the reason. Elisa gave her so much seafood¡­ and that he¡¯d eaten quite a bit at lunch¡­ ¡°Serenity? Serenity!¡± Shawn Lowe¡¯s cries came from outside. Zachary immediately turned the fire down to its lowest and speedily ran into the bathroom, closing the door behind him. . There was no other reason than for the fact Shawn Lowe had met him before. If Shawn saw him, his real identity would be exposed to Serenity. Zachary did not want Shawn to expose his real identity. Shawn walked into the bookshop and called for Serenity a few more times after seeing there was no one around. In the bathroom, Zachary pinched his nose and shouted: ¡°Who¡¯s there? Serenity¡¯s not in at the moment. Is something the matter?¡± Hearing a stranger¡¯s voice and having seen the national MPV parked in front of the shop, Shawn guessed that it was Serenity¡¯s husband. He was silent for a moment before he replied: ¡°Are you Serenity¡¯s husband? Where did she go? It¡¯s not a big deal, I¡¯ll just give her a call. ¡± ¡°She¡¯s probably driving at the moment. You can tell me what you have to say to her and I¡¯ll pass on the message when she¡¯s back,¡± Zachary said from the bathroom. How could Shawn tell Zachary the truth? He hade over to beg Serenity to apany him to the business reception at Wilt spoon Hotel that night. Although Lowe Enterprise did have its ce in Wilt spoon¡¯s world of business, Shawn, as a sessor, was still in training. He was still a small fry. His father arranged for him to attend tonight¡¯s business reception to expand hiswork of connections within the industry and to get to know the elites. Once he took over Lowe Enterprise and if the management got gutted, he would still be able to choose from the elites at this business reception and nurture his own confidants. ¡°It¡¯s nothing much, brother¨Cinw. ¡± Shawn walked further in. ¡°Where are you, brother¨Cinw?¡± He saw that there was no one in the kitchen. Zachary harrumphed in his heart. ¡®Brother¨Cinw? Who on earth was his brother¨Cinw? You call me brother¨Cinw, but you want to snatch my wife away!¡® Zachary saw Shawn as his love rival, and he was his love rival indeed. Shawn was definitely waiting for him and Serenity to divorce. Even if they divorced, did Shawn really think he had a chance? If Serenity was going to fall for Shawn, she would have fallen for him long ago. She said it herself, that she only saw him as a little brother! ¡°I¡¯m in the bathroom. You can sit outside for a moment. I¡¯ll be done soon. ¡± ¡°I¨CI have something urgent to deal with, so I won¡¯t stay. I¡¯ll make a move first, brother -inw. ¡± Shawn did feel a little guilty. Even if Serenity and her husband did have a shotgun marriage, he could not ask Serenity to go with him to a business reception right in front of her husband¡¯s face. ¡°Alright, I won¡¯t send you off then. ¡± Zachary would never ask Shawn to stay. Shawn paused for a second, then turned to walk outside. Chapter 256 Chapter 256 Chapter 256 ¨C Zachary only came out of the bathroom when he heard Shawn¡¯s footsteps fade into the distance. and He was thankful for two things right then and there. One for Nana calling him over, two for himself resisting his pride and taking the out that Nana offered him. Otherwise, Shawn would have the chance to be alone with Serenity. Shawn walked out of the bookshop, got into his car, and drove away. However, just as he reached a junction, he stopped his car and called Serenity. Serenity quickly picked up his call. ¡°What¡¯s up, Shawn? ¡±Serenity, are you freeter? Around 7:30 pm. ¡± ¡°Why?¡± Serenity did not say if she was free but instead straightforwardly asked him why. Shawn hesitated before saying, ¡°I have to attend a business reception at Wilt spoon. Hotel in a while. I need a femalepanion. You know me, I don¡¯t have a girlfriend yet, so I wanted to ask for your help to apany me to the reception. ¡± ¡°Get Jasmine to go with you. C¨°ntens bel0ngs to N?(v)elDr/a/ma.Org I¡¯m not free. My husband¡¯s still waiting in the bookshop. to have dinner with me. ¡± Serenity rejected his invitation without a second thought. She saw Shawn as a younger brother, but Zachary misunderstood her and thought she was treating Shawn as a backup partner. Although she had no intention to do so, she would still minimize the chances of her being alone with Shawn, or even better, if there were not any at all. Speaking of which, thest time she treated Shawn to a meal, Jasmine was there too. They were not alone together, but Zachary still managed to misunderstand after seeing them and thinking she was cheating on him with Shawn. That really pissed her off. Why was it that in Zachary¡¯s eyes, she was someone who could not wait to find her next partner? Shawn felt ufortable in his heart upon hearing Serenity bring up her husband, but he did not show it and proceeded to beg. ¡°Serenity, are you really going to eat dinner all the way till seven o¡¯clockter? Please help me out. Jas always has something going on at night. She can¡¯t help me with this. ¡± ¡°Must you have a femalepanion? I don¡¯t need until 7 pm to have my dinner, but I still have to watch the shop. And anyway, I¡¯m married. Shawn, I¡¯ve always treated you as my younger brother, but in others¡® eyes, we¡¯re not blood¨C rted. ¡°If I were to apany you to this business reception, what would they think of us?¡± Shawn knew Serenity did not see him as a man at all and only did think of him as a younger brother. That did not stop Shawn from feeling hurt to hear her actually say it out loud, that she only saw him as a younger brother. If only he had known earlier that Serenity needed a man to get into a shotgun marriage with, he would definitely have helped her. Unfortunately, there was no such thing. Serenity was probably put off by the fact that he was three years younger than her. She had never considered him as an option and would rather marry a stranger than him! Shawn understood that in his heart, but still could not help but hope. Jas had said that Serenity and her husband had signed an agreement and would divorce after half a year. Once she was divorced, he would definitely confess his feelings to her. ¡°Serenity, that¡¯s just what they think. Who cares what they say? Our consciences are clear. ¡± Serenity was silent for a moment before she said withplete honesty, ¡°Shawn, my husband minds a lot if I¡¯m spending time alone with other men. ¡± Shawn might really have just been looking for a femalepanion and did not mean anything else by it, but Serenity had to drill into Shawn¡¯s head that she was now a married woman! and they Serenity had started to After having argued with Zachary and having experienced the cold war could not even be considered to have made up at this moment pay attention to her proximity to men. Shawn was speechless. ¡°Shawn, I¡¯m going to start driving, so I¡¯ll hang up now. If you really need someone to go with you, get Jas to go. What could she have tonight? Isn¡¯t it just watching dramas? If you just mention it to her, she¡¯d definitely help you with this. ¡± ¨C Jasmine Sox was actually a hermit. At night, she loved to stay at home watching dramas and reading novels on her phone. Serenity proceeded to hang up. Chapter 257 Chapter 257 Chapter 257 ¨C Despite Zachary having said there was no need to get anything else to eat, Serenity still ordered two freshly cooked dishes and two portions of white rice to go. After paying for the food, she walked out of the restaurant carrying the packed food and got into her car. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Her phone started ringing again. This time, the call was from Zachary. Shawn came and went, but Zachary was overly sensitive about it, so he could not resist. making a call to Serenity. ¡°I¡¯ming back now,¡± Serenity immediately said without waiting for Zachary to speak first, and promptly hung up. Zachary, who was almost immediately hung up on by his wife, looked at his phone in silence for a long while. He knew Serenity was still mad at him in her heart. The two of them had not actually made up. Their current situation was only due to Nana¡¯s interference and out of respect for her. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Serenity did indeed return to the bookshop in a jiffy. ¡°Have the leftovers been heated up? We can eat now. ¡± Serenity asked Zachary who was seated behind the counter as she walked in, carrying the packed food. ¡°It¡¯s done. ¡± Seeing that she had returned, Zachary immediately stood up and walked out from behind the counter. He walked into the kitchen to grab tes and utensils for them and then returned to the kitchen to bring out the heated food. Serenity ced the packed food on the counter. Zachary saw that there were new dishes. and said, ¡°Did I not say there wasn¡¯t a need to get anything else?¡± ¡°I was worried you wouldn¡¯t be used to eating leftovers, so I got two dishes, especially for you. The food from his restaurant is pretty good. When I get takeout, I order it from this restaurant often. ¡± Hearing that the two dishes were specially ordered for him, Zachary¡¯s gaze on her deepened. For the pair of husband and wife to get along, he was putting in the effort, and so was she. He was changing, bit by bit, and so was she. ¡°Oh, right. There was a guy who came by looking for you earlier. He called me brother inw. ¡± Zachary seemed to say nonchntly as he helped scoop some rice forSerenity. ¡°He said he was looking for you for something. When I asked him what it was, he didn¡¯t say and didn¡¯t even stay two minutes longer before leaving. Did he call you? Was it an urgent matter?¡± Serenity did not hide the truth from him and said, ¡°That was Shawn. It wasn¡¯t anything urgent. I asked him to ask Jasmine for help because I couldn¡¯t help him with whatever he needed. ¡± Zachary did not say anything more. The pair of them descended into silence for a short moment. After a pause, Zachary still decided to ask. ¡°What did he ask for your help with?¡± Serenity put a peeled prawn into her mouth. This was from the leftovers when Zachary peeled the whole te of prawns. Sonny could not eat that much, so there was still half a te of it left. She loved eating prawns. She loved all kinds of seafood. ¡°He¡¯s going to attend the business reception at Wiltspoon Hotel in a while and he needed a female companion. He wanted to invite me to go with him, but I rejected him. I¡¯m a married woman now. ¡± After Serenity said that, she gave Zachary a look. Zachary knew what she meant by those words. His expression remainedposed. He did not eat less just because his wife gave him at look. erenity¡¯s honesty made him feel much better, and he felt like he had a particrly good appetite. He ate the two dishes Serenity had specially ordered for him with great relish. The two of them ate up all of the food. After the meal, Serenity was about to clear the table when Zachary stood up and did it first. ¡°I¡¯ll do it. You should sit and have a rest,¡± ¡°You make it sound like you¡¯re afraid I¡¯m about to burst. ¡± Zachary smiled, what a rare sight. ¡°I really am afraid you ate so much you¡¯ll burst. ¡± ¡°The seafood can¡¯t be kept. It doesn¡¯t taste good after the first meal, let alone overnight. We have to finish it and not waste it. Seafood is pretty expensive right now. You might be earning a lot, but we should still be saving where we can. Zacharyughed. ¡°I can still afford to take care of you. If you like eating seafood, we can buy it for ourselves after this. ¡± ¡° All the seafood Ms. Stone gave us is fresh. She brought it back specially from the seaside. Chapter 258 Chapter 258 Chapter 258 ¨C ¡°If you want to, we can take a weekend trip to the seaside too and have seafood freshly caught from the sea. ¡± This was Zachary¡¯s first time suggesting that they take a weekend trip. ¡°It¡¯s already November. ¡± ¡°As long as the sun behaves normally, November in Wilt spoon is still hot, especially during the day. It¡¯s even more suitable to go to the seaside for a holiday then. It won¡¯t be too cold nor will it be too hot. ¡± Serenity rubbed her stomach. ¡°We can talk about thister. I can¡¯t be sure now that I won¡¯t have something else on that weekend. ¡± Zachary gave a hum in response. As he cleared the table and brought the dishes into the kitchen to wash them, he heard his great and mighty wife remind him, ¡°Don¡¯t pour too much dishwashing liquid in and end up filling the sink with bubbles. ¡± Zachary kept a straight face and did not respond. After ten minutes, Zachary was done with the dishes. Having looked in the fridge earlier, he knew there were some fruits in the fridge. He washed a fruit te and took out some of each type of fruit from the fridge. He washed the fruits before cutting them into pieces and arranging them on the te. . After putting a few toothpicks onto the te, he walked out of the kitchen while. carrying the fruit te. ¡°Have some fruits. ¡± He put the fruit te on the counter. Serenity was speechless for a moment. ¡°Are you actually trying to make me so full I¡¯ll burst?¡± Zachary lightly poked her forehead. ¡°Don¡¯t you know how to go out for a walk to help. with digestion?¡± The entrance to Wilt spoon School was so wide, and there was a long doublene road by it. It was also next to a big river. If she just walked onep along the road, which was also the riverside, she would be able to ease her digestion. Serenity was surprised by his sudden intimate action and instinctively raised her hand to smack his away, but he withdrew his hand before that could happen. She smacked the air instead. ¡°We should go out for a walk in a bit. ¡± Serenity sat up straight and asked, ¡°Don¡¯t you have a business engagement tonight?¡± ¡°There was one tonight, but Nana insisted that Ie over to eat with you, so I had to call it off. ¡± Embarrassed, Serenity said, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask Nana to do that, okay?¡± Her rtionship with Grandma May was good. She married him in the first ce because of her. Worried that he would think she was manipting Grandma May, Serenity tried to exin. Zachary looked at her with keen, dark eyes, and said gently, ¡°I know it wasn¡¯t your intention. ¡± Nana was giving him an out. Serenity looked at the time and saw that it was just past seven. ¡°It¡¯s still early. What time was your business engagement originally? You can still go do your thing. ¡± Zachary was silent. The moment he stopped talking, the lines of his face would tense up tightly. It made him look especially serious and cold. His thin lips pursed into a line, as tightly as a m. There was a saying that men with thin lips were ungrateful. Whether or not he would be ungrateful, Serenity had no idea, but she knew he was cold hearted and just as unfriendly towards younger members of the opposite sex. If it were not for her fateful encounter with Nana where she helped Nana, which led to Nana¡¯s gratitude, and without Zachary being extremely filial toward his Nana, he would have definitely treated her much worse than this. No, he would not even have married her in the first ce. Zachary met Serenity¡¯s gaze and the two of them looked at each other. ¡°Serenity, do you dislike being alone with me that much?¡± When Zachary asked that, his tone was low, and his gaze toward Serenity seemed to spark with a dangerous gleam. ¡°Do you like being alone with me?¡± Serenity asked him in return. Zachary was silent again. His silence gave Serenity her answer. She did not mind either way and took out her phone to watch videos. She said, ¡°Mr. York, if you¡¯re really busy, go ahead with your business. I¡¯m used to watching the shop by myself. N?velDrama.Org ? content. ¡± To be honest, she really was not used to Zachary being here and apanying her. Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. She was chasing him away! Chapter 259 Chapter 259 Chapter 259 ¨C Zachary saw that Serenity¡¯s attention was entirely focused on her phone and had the impulse to snatch her phone away. The good thing was he had great self¨Ccontrol, so he did not actually do that, lest the rtionship deteriorated again. He walked closer, stood in front of Serenity, and said in his deep voice, ¡°Honey. ¡± Bam! Serenity was so shocked by him calling her ¡°honey¡± that she dropped her phone on the floor. She quickly bent over to pick her phone up. When she saw that her phone screen cracked really badly, she immediately said in dismay, ¡°My phone case cost a hundred bucks. ¡± Zachary took the phone from her and had a look at it. Yeah, it was broken pretty badly. When he heard her words of dismay about the phone case, he said, ¡°I¡¯ll buy you ten inpensation. ¡± ¡°You should buy a few more for me. I¡¯m worried I¡¯ll drop my phone case and break. them multiple times when you lose your marbles and call me ¡®honey¡®. ¡± The corner of Zachary¡¯s mouth spasmed. He looked at her in silence for a moment. before saying gravely, ¡°Serenity, we¡¯re still husband and wife. ¡± It was a hundred percent normal andpletely justified of him to call her ¡°honey¡°. Serenity took her phone from his hands and asked him bemusedly, ¡°Tell me, what else do you want to say? I think you¡¯d better go back to calling me by my name from now on. I¡¯m not used to calling you ¡®babe¡®, and I¡¯m not used to you calling me ¡®honey¡® either. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m sorry. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was serious. He thought his expression must have looked apologetic. However in Serenity¡¯s eyes, he looked so serious he resembled the head teacher in school, someone the students would take a detour to avoid running into. That was wrong ¡°That night, I was a bit impulsive and I did some bad things to you. me, so I¡¯m sorry. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Serenity just looked at him, waiting for him to continue. Who knew that after those two sentences, he would just look at her? There was no continuation thereafter. of This was his apology for molesting her. He did not apologize for his misunderstanding of her and Shawn. ¡°There¡¯s nothing between Shawn and I. ¡± Serenity had exined herself long ago, but still exined it once more. ¡°I really don¡¯t have any romantic feelings for him. I treated him to a meal to thank him for helping me. There wasn¡¯t anything else to it. And anyway, it¡¯s written in the agreement that we won¡¯t interfere in each other¡¯s private life. ¡± She hadn¡¯t interfered in his private life. Zachary was speechless. Once more, he regretted making her sign that agreement in the beginning. It had not. tied her down at all but instead had be a burden he could not get rid of. ¡°Also, Jasmine was worried you thought she was trying to help matchmake me and Shawn, so she asked me to make sure I exined it to you clearly that neither I nor Jasmine has ever thought of setting me up with Shawn. ¡± Zachary now truly believed Serenity had no romantic feelings for Shawn at all. He pursed his lips and asked, ¡° Shawn has a crush on you, don¡¯t you know?¡± Serenity was stunned. Shawn had a crush on her? That could not be possible¡­ could it? She was older than Shawn by three years. ¡°O¨Cother than the day you saw Shawn and I eating lunch together, when else have your met him? How do you know he has a crush on me? Did he tell you that?¡± Zachary propped his hands on the counter and leaned across it, his handsome face suddenly approaching Serenity¡¯s face closely. Serenity looked at him, blinking her big eyes. This iceberg really is handsome. Every time she saw his face in close proximity, Serenity had the urge to touch his face. She had tasted those thin lips of his before. She had to say, his temperament was cold. and aloof by nature, but when he kissed her, he was truly passionate; his passion as fiery as a burning me, almost seeming as if he wanted to melt her whole being. ¡°Look at my gaze,¡± Zacharymanded in a low voice. Serenity looked at him. What was in his gaze? There were his eyeballs. ¡°Do you see it?¡± ¡°I see your eyeballs. ¡± The corner of Zachary¡¯s mouth twitched. ¡°What do you want me to see? I see your eyes are very big too. They¡¯re very nice, just like your face. Mr. York, you really are blessed by the heavens. You have all the merits of a man¡¯s appearance. ¡± Serenity could not resist teasing Zachary. She ambushed his face with both her hands, pinching his cheeks, and said, ¡°You¡¯re always making such a stiff expression. I thought your face would be as hard as marble, but pinching it now, your face feels quite soft. I heard that people with soft facial muscles have a good temper. You have such a bad temper, but your face still feels soft when I pinch it. ¡± Chapter 260 Chapter 260 Chapter 260 ¨C Zachary was speechless for a moment. ¡° Can¡¯t you see the sincere emotions in my eyes? Shawn looks at you the same way I just looked at you. I¡¯m a man so I understand how other men are. He has a crush on you, and he¡¯s been crushing on you for a very long time. ¡± It was just this silly woman who foolishly thought of him as a younger brother. Shawn did not want to be her younger brother, he wanted to be her man. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. As for her teasing, Zachary did not stop Serenity from teasing him again and taking advantage of him. ¡°Are there emotions in your eyes? I can only feel killing intent. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. His performance had been in vain. Serenityughed embarrassedly. ¡°Maybe your acting just wasn¡¯t good enough. Any emotion in the eyes has toe from the heart. You don¡¯t love me, so your gaze when you look at me naturally wouldn¡¯t have any emotions then. ¡± Zachary raised his hand. He finally smacked away her mischievous pair of hands. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± ¡°Say it. ¡± ¡°I- Um, I think, I really really want to kiss you. ¡± Zachary kept a straight face and just looked at her with his dark eyes. Serenity was embarrassed again. ¡°You¡¯re just too handsome. ¡± After they kissed thest time, she kind of missed that overbearing kiss of his. Huh? Did she just fall? ¡°If you don¡¯t want to, just forget it. You should hurry and go do your thing. I¡¯ll keep watching the shop,¡± Serenity said as she picked up her phone again and pretended to look at it, avoiding his gaze. Out of nowhere, a pair of big, strong hands pulled her up from her position behind the counter. Those hands grabbed her shoulders and pulled herforward. He moved closer and covered her sweet lips with his. Serenity blinked. This man must not be used to women taking the lead. She felt likeughing because this guy just had to win in everything. ¡°Ow. ¡± She felt pain bloom on her lip. He had bitten her! Although there was no blood, it did hurt. ¡°Are you a dog?! You bit me!¡± ¡°You¡¯ve bitten me before too. ¡± Who told her not to pay attention? He thought his charm was boundless with her praising him for being handsome and even saying she wanted to kiss him, but when he kissed her, she was so distracted, her mind might have even flown off into the abyss. It was so disrespectful of his effort to take the initiative. ¡°You petty bastard!¡± She held Zachary¡¯s face with both her hands and bit his lip hard. She then watched as his thin lip slowly started to swell because she bit it a little too hard. Zachary made his way behind the counter. ¡°What do you want, Zachary? You¡¯re a grown man. Are you nning to go tit for tat with a little girl like me? Where are your manners? Where¡¯s your generosity? You Ah!¡± Zachary caught her and pushed her against the counter. He kissed her dominantly and forcefully. It was not until she raised the white g of surrender that he let her up. ¡°If you Zachary warned her as he loosened his grip on her. No one should treat him like some sort of celibate saint who could resist the temptation of a beautiful woman in his arms. With her teasing him like that all the time, he would sometimes want to fall into temptation too. ¡°Who told you to look so good? Why do you look so handsome if you have nothing to do with it?¡± Serenity muttered. Zachary¡¯s expression darkened again. She teased him first and was now ming him for being handsome. ¡°Serenity! Get out here, you damn brat!¡± The sound of the violent yell swept into the shop at the speed of a tornado. Nobody had arrived yet, but their voices came through first. Chapter 261 Chapter 261 Chapter 262 ¨C Stuart Hunt was the boss of the family. At this time, he came forward and sized up Zachary. Forcing a smile, he asked politely, ¡°Are you Serenity¡¯s husband? I¡¯m her oldest uncle, Stuart. Hello. ¡± Zachary nced at the group of Hunts and said icily, ¡°What are all of you doing here in the middle of the night? Are you trying to frighten my wife to death? I¡¯m warning you, my wife is timid. She can¡¯t suffer frights like that. ¡± The Hunts were speechless. Serenity, timid? If she was considered timid, there were no brave people left on earth. Although Serenity knew he was taking her side in front of outsiders, hearing him call her his wife still felt somewhat strange to her. Hmm. Maybe because theirs was a marriage of convenience and was not the type that involved feelings, they were unable to be as intimate as regr couples were. ¡°W¨Cwe¡¯re just here to see Serenity. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. After my younger brother and his wife passed away, Serenity and her sister became distant from us. We haven¡¯t met for a long time, so now that we¡¯re in the city and after finding out Serenity was here, we came over to see if she¡¯s doing well. ¡± Stuart Hunt lied with a straight face. He was so shameless that Zachary felt Elisa Stone had to be bumped down to second ce. If Elisa Stone heard this, she would have said, ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s fine if you don¡¯t love me, but don¡¯t insult me by putting me and trash like this in the same running. ¡± ¡°Just now, I heard someone yelling at the top of their lungs, ¡®Serenity! Get out here, you dam brat!¡®. With that tone, it sounded more like that person wasing to settle some scores pick a fight. ¡± When Zachary took things seriously, a regr person was not his opponent at all. Stuart Hunt smiled embarrassedly and said, ¡°I heard your surname is York? Mr. York, you might have misheard. ¡± The other Hunts remained silent. ¡°I heard you loud and clear. There are security cameras in the shop too. Shall I show you go the recording?¡± Chapter 262 Chapter 262 Chapter 263 ¨C David Hunt was the first to react, and he immediately turned to run after his wife and check on her. ¡°Honey, are you alright?¡± Abigail was dragged out by Zachary and was pushed down to the ground without pain, but she looked like a wretch and felt like Zachary had held her face down and rubbed it against the ground ¡°Are you dead? Is this how you act as my husband? You didn¡®t even stop him when he dragged me out of the shop! You didn¡®t help me either and just watched him bully me, drag me out, and push me to the ground!¡± Abigail immediately pushed her husband away and started yelling at him while pointing at him after he helped her up. ¡°After bullying my kid, you¡®re now bullying me! Is there any reason in this world? God, open your eyes and see. Strike these unfilial and vicious people who are disrespectful to their elders down with thunder!¡± David Hunt was the youngest of his brothers and sisters and had always been doted on by his parents and older siblings. And after his wife married him, he was doted on by his wife¡®s family too. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Although he was the poorest among the Hunts, with his siblings¡® help, he still managed to build his own vi. Abigail had not suffered any sort of hardship since marrying into the Hunt family. She had never suffered such a disgrace before, so when she did, she naturally started scolding them loudly. She wanted to draw the attention of passers¨Cby and proim Serenity¡®s evil deeds to the world to show everyone just how arrogant Serenity was to be so unreasonable toward her own aunts and uncles. David Hunt knew his wife well, having been married for many years. He hurriedly covered his wife¡®s mouth, and growled wth quite a bit of exasperation, ¡°What are you yelling for? Did you think Serenity would feel embarrassed if people came to look? Think about what our son has done. ¡°If we¡®re filmed and the video was posted on the inte, we¡®d be the ones who¡®d be embarrassed! It wasn¡®t easy to get off the trending section. Now that we finally have some peace, you want to make a fuss and get onto the trending section again?¡± The sticking point was Serenity still had someone backing her. David Hunt was very angry too, seeing his wife treated that way by Zachary. No matter which way you cut it, they were still Serenity¡®s elders, and since Zachary was Serenity¡®s husband, they were his elders too. They could forgiven being called by their familial titles, but Zachary had dragged his wife out like a dog just because she scolded him a little, and even said he would dirtied his hands doing so! David Hunt was so angry he wanted to fight Zachary Thinking of the way they had not managed to benefit in any way after getting involved with Serenity and her sister and how Serenity posted in reply to them on the inte about the reason why she was unfilial, resulting in the sudden change of public opinion turning against them. Even when they hired bots, they were unable to turn the tide. Following that, the entire family suffered attacks and usations from theizens. The few days they trended the highest fet like years to the Hunts, having thoroughly tasted the power of online violence. Now that they finally had some peace, David Hunt did not want to repeat the experience. In addition, the problem was, they were the unreasonable ones! Abigail¡¯s curses lowered in volume. She swiftly rushed into the shop once again like a mad woman. David Hunt and his siblings hurriedly tried to hold her back and block her, terrified that she would raise her hand against Serenity and her husband on impulse. Noah Hunt led a group of thugs to block Serenity¡¯s way, but they had not managed to harm even a hair on Serenity¡¯s head¨Clet alone these older people Chapter 263 Chapter 263 Chapter 264 ¨C Over the years, they would live a pampered life and had fattened up. Even a little movement left them panting with exertion. They really could not afford to start a fight with Serenity and her husband, especially since Serenity knew martial arts. It was a mystery how Liberty brought up her sister that she let Serenity learn martial arts. Luckily, they had the foresight to take Serenity¡¯s father¡¯s life insurance payout for safekeeping, or else it might have been thoroughly wasted by Serenity and her sister. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯d better not go too far! I¡¯m telling you, if you don¡¯t get Noah out of jail and something happens to him in there, you¡¯ll never hear the end of it from me! Don¡¯t assume that I¡¯d be afraid of you just because you have a husband now!¡± Abigail yelled while pointing at Serenity. Zachary finished washing his hands and turned his head. With just a sweep of his sharp, icy gaze over her, Abigail¡¯s curses immediately softened. She was pretty scared of this cold, taciturn man. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Stuart Hunt finally spoke, ¡°No matter what it is, it¡¯s not right to raise your hand against someone. If you ask your husband to apologize to your aunt, as the elders, we won¡¯t hold it¡® against you further. ¡± ¡°So you do know it¡¯s not right to raise your hand against someone. When Noah led a bunch of thugs, all carrying metal bars, to block my way in the middle of the night and threatened me to leave the car, I was so scared back then. And when I got down, he made a move against me first. If it weren¡¯t for my quick reactions, hat metal bar of his would have hit me. How do you think I¡¯d have ended up then?¡± The corner of Zachary¡¯s mouth twitched when he heard Serenity say she was so scared then, but there was a hint ofughter in his eyes. Serenity continued, ¡°He was in the wrong and I was only acting in self¨C defense. How am I at fault? Now you guys havee here in a big group, at night, to use me and verbally abuse me. Do you think you¡¯re justified in doing that?¡± Stuart Hunt was rendered speechless. After a moment, he said, ¡°Serenity, we do know that Noah¡¯s in the wrong, but aren¡¯t you fine? You know martial arts, and Noah with his gang of people couldn¡¯t even beat you. You¡¯re perfectly fine. What¡¯s a little conflict between cousins? Since you¡¯ve fought it out, just let it pass. Why did you have to involve the police? ¡°Noah¡¯s still a minor. His detainment will greatly affect his future. You¡¯re his cousin. Isn¡¯t it a little too heartless of you to treat your own family like this?¡± Serenity said coldly, ¡°Don¡¯t talk to me about family. If I was heartless, he wouldn¡¯t have just been detained. And anyway, don¡¯t you think it¡¯sughable for you guys to chastise me for being heartless? When have you guys ever beenpassionate? When my parents died, do you remember how you treated my sister and I? ¡°Fifteen years ago, you guys personally severed any ties of family between you and my sister and I. So now, don¡¯te and talk to me about being family!¡± Serenity walked forward to stand in front of Abigail, who red at her fury, wishing she could burn her alive with her gaze. Although she was very tempted to attack her, with Zachary¡®s cold eyes pinned on her, Abigail was too much of a coward and in the end, did not dare to make a move. ¡°You should be grateful. Just think about it¨Cyour son¡®s underage, but he¡®s already got the gall to lead a bunch of thugs to block someone¡®s road. They didn¡®t manage to get me because I know martial arts. But if I had been a weak, feeble woman and he¡®d assaulted me and smashed up my car, and even stolen my valuables and stuff, what do you think he¡®d have be? ¡°A robber. The crime of robbery is a very serious one. He wouldn¡®t only be detained¨Che¡®d also have been sentenced to prison for quite a few years. Sure, he¡®s a minor, but he¡®s already reached the age of 16. If he breaks thew, he has to take responsibility for doing so. ¡°Now, this will teach him a lesson. Detaining him will make him understand what he did was illegal. After hees out, he¡®ll know to restrain himself and he won¡®t be like those crooks. He wouldn¡®t dare to mess around in the future. If this isn¡®t saving him, what is?¡± Serenity spoke with reason and justification, and the elder Hunts unexpectedly had no way of refuting it. She continued to say, ¡°If it weren¡®t for my taking into consideration the fact that we¡®re still blood¨Crted in the end, I wouldn¡®t have saved him this time. I¡®d have just left him to it and not cared if he died. ¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 264 Chapter 264 Chapter 265 ¨C ¡°Come on, thank me. You¡¯d better buy more gifts for me to thank me profusely for saving your son¡¯s life. ¡± Serenity¡¯s words made the corners of the Hunt elders¡® mouths twitch. Abigail was so mad her eyes and veins seemed as if they were about to burst out of her head, her expression grotesque. However, she still did not dare to raise her hand against Serenity. A hint of a smile shed in Zachary¡¯s eyes as he watched how Serenity managed to rebut the elders into silence without even lifting a finger. This woman was interesting! ¡°Serenity. ¡± Serenity¡¯s eldest aunt Katelyn could not help but say, ¡°We didn¡¯t say you were at fault. Noah was in the wrong. It¡¯s just that you guys are cousins¨Cvery closely rted, at that. We¡¯re all one family. If there¡¯s a conflict, we¡¯ll deal with it behind closed doors. As long as you told us about it, we¡¯d have scolded him. There¡¯s no need to put him in jail. ¡°We wanted to bail him out, but our request was denied. Did you say something to that backer of yours to make it so that we couldn¡¯t bail him out? Serenity, I know you and your sister hold a grudge against us because of what happened back then, but we¡¯re a family after all. And a family is mademup of its members, so let¡¯s not involve outsiders in our family business. ¡± 1 What she essentially meant was that Serenity should not tell her backer about everything and use her backer to suppress their family. serenity felt that Zachary¡¯s method of taking action directly was the right one. It simply was impossible to reason with these people. They kept thinking that just because she and Noah were cousins, even if Noahmitted a crime, it should not be reported to the police for them to handle. The said coldly, ¡°Every time I hear you emphasize the blood rtionship and the fact that we¡¯re a ¡®family¡®, I feel likeughing. No wonder you guys can live such full lives. You guys are thick¨Cskinned, shameless, and indecent enough to. N?velDrama.Org ? content. If someone is indecent enough, they¡¯re invincible, and you guys are all invincible. ¡°You know that I hate you guys, and yet you stille before me and try to lecture me using your position as elders? Aren¡¯t you guys embarrassed? I¡¯m already giving you some respect, or else I¡¯d have swept you out the door with my broom! What kind of elders are you? Pooh!¡± Katelyn¡¯s face rapidly turned red. ¡°You hear that? I already told you guys long ago that we can¡¯t be polite with her with that attitude of hers! We need to teach her a lesson on behalf of her father! She has no respect for her elders! She¡¯s bringing shame to her father!¡± Abigail screamed. Serenity could not stand it anymore the moment they brought up herte father. She immediately turned to grab the broom and holding it high, she chased her aunts and uncles out of her bookshop. Talking to them was a waste of her saliva. ¡°My father? My father?! You guys have the gall to bring up my father?! How did he treat you guys when he was alive? When he died, how did you guys treat my sister and I? You should hurry andin to my dad then. Tell him I have no respect for my elders! If you¡¯re capable of it, get him toe back and scold me then! I¡¯m telling you now, other than my parents, none of you have the right to scold me, nor to stand before me and be an ¡®elder¡®!¡± Stuart Hunt and the lot of them were chased out of the shop by Serenity. Serenity was still angry and continued to chase after them, scolding them as she chased them, which attracted many onlookers. Serenity was not affected by the onlookers and continued to chase them and scold them until Stuart Hunt and the rest got into their car to hide. They breathed a sigh of relief after the door closed behind them. Fortunately, they would run fast enough not to get hit by Serenity¡¯s broom. Not daring to stay any longer, they quickly started the car and drove off. Serenity held the broom in one hand and propped her other hand on her waist as she scolded, As soon as my parents died, you guys fought over the division of my parents¡® life insurance payout, seized the house built by my parents, and drove us sisters out of the vige. Over the many years, you guys didn¡¯t even extend a helping hand to us. Now, you have the nerve to scold me and act like an elder? She said this as a form of exnation to the crowd of onlookers so that her image as a beautiful woman would not be damaged. Chapter 265 Chapter 265 Chapter 266 ¨C Serenity was a very reasonable person and was very respectful of her elders. Of course, she would only respect them depending on whether those elders truly acted like elders. ¡°Serenity, were those people earlier your rtives? Are they causing troublefor you again? Are they still asking you to pay up for your grandmother¡®s medical bills? Those people are really shameless! They drive their own cars and live in vis. They have a million¨Cmaybe even millions ¨C in savings, but they don¡®t want to pay for their own mother¡®s medical bills and instead are trying to force their orphaned nieces to pay. ¡± ¡°I¡®ve seen shameless people, but I¡®ve never seen anyone as shameless as they are. My horizons have been broadened. ¡± ¡°That¡®s right! Serenity¡®s parents died in an ident and the life insurance payout was divided between them too. Fifteen years ago, six hundred thousand dors was worth a lot! The reason why they live such good lives now is built off of Serenity¡®s parents¡® life insurance money! And now they¡®re still trying to bully her after thoroughly taking advantage of her!¡± ¡°Serenity, you¡®re just too nice. When you face such shameless people, the moment they arrive, you should just sweep them out the door with your broom! There¡®s no need to say another word to them. They won¡®t admit that they¡®re wrong no matter what they¡®ve done. They¡®ll always think they¡®re right and that others are wrong. ¡± Serenity, the next time they try to bully you and make you pay for your grandmother¡¯s medical bills, just give us a call! We¡®ll a lle over to help you chase those heartless, shameless punks away. ¡± All her neighbors knew about Serenity¡®s issue with her rtives. Even if they had just witnessed Serenity chasing after her elders with a broom, they did not feel Serenity was in the wrong and even felt that she was a little too kind. If they would have been in her shoes, they would have adopted a few dogs. If that group of trash dared show themselves then, they would just let the dogs loose on them. It was a waste of their energy to have even a casual conversation with that bunch of trash. Serenity said bitterly, ¡°They¡®re still my dad¡®s siblings, after all. I was just so angry that I had to chase them away. ¡± ¡°That¡®s how it should be. Sure, they¡®re your father¡®s siblings, but they¡®re also too heartless! Normal people wouldn¡®t have been able to do the terribly abominable things that they did! Serenity, you don¡®t have to feel guilty. You did the right thing. We support you!¡± Serenity thanked everyone for understanding her and for not thinking that she had gone overboard. Once the crowd had dispersed, Serenity returned to her shop, holding her broom. Zachary looked at her soberly with his dark eyes. Every time she ran into trouble, she never gave him the chance to help her. She moved too fast. She would jump into action the moment she got her hands on the broom, and then managed to chase them away in the blink of an eye. She even put on such a look of suffering so that the onlookers wouldpletely be on her side and help her condemn those trashy rtives of hers. He was a hero without a battleground. Serenity ced the broom back in its original position. ¡°They ran fast, or else I¡¯d have beat them to a pulp!¡± she said as she walked toward Zachary. Stopping in front of him, she looked at him and said in thanks, ¡°Mr. York, hanks for helping me shock my aunts and the rest to the point they only dared to use their mouths. You made them afro aid to raise their hands against me. ¡±Zachary was the lead actor for the first act and served the purpose of shocking them. She then took the lead for the second act and chased those people away. N?velDrama.Org ? content. serenity felt that the responsibility of chasing the trash away rightfully fell to her. Zachary was silent for a long moment before he said, ¡°Serenity, you should give me a chance to do something in the future. Or else, others will say you married a useless man, and that doesn¡¯t look good for you either. ¡± Chapter 266 Chapter 266 Chapter 266 ¨C Serenity was a very reasonable person and was very respectful of her elders. Of course, she would only respect them depending on whether those elders truly acted like elders. ¡°Serenity, were those people earlier your rtives? Are they causing troublefor you again? Are they still asking you to pay up for your grandmother¡®s medical bills? Those people are really shameless! They drive their own cars and live in vis. They have a million¨Cmaybe even millions ¨C in savings, but they don¡®t want to pay for their own mother¡®s medical bills and instead are trying to force their orphaned nieces to pay. ¡± ¡°I¡®ve seen shameless people, but I¡®ve never seen anyone as shameless as they are. My horizons have been broadened. ¡± ¡°That¡®s right! Serenity¡®s parents died in an ident and the life insurance payout was divided between them too. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Fifteen years ago, six hundred thousand dors was worth a lot! The reason why they live such good lives now is built off of Serenity¡®s parents¡® life insurance money! And now they¡®re still trying to bully her after thoroughly taking advantage of her!¡± ¡°Serenity, you¡®re just too nice. When you face such shameless people, the moment they arrive, you should just sweep them out the door with your broom! There¡®s no need to say another word to them. They won¡®t admit that they¡®re wrong no matter what they¡®ve done. They¡®ll always think they¡®re right and that others are wrong. ¡± Serenity, the next time they try to bully you and make you pay for your grandmother¡¯s medical bills, just give us a call! We¡®ll a lle over to help you chase those heartless, shameless punks away. ¡± All her neighbors knew about Serenity¡®s issue with her rtives. Even if they had just witnessed Serenity chasing after her elders with a broom, they did not feel Serenity was in the wrong and even felt that she was a little too kind. If they would have been in her shoes, they would have adopted a few dogs. If that group of trash dared show themselves then, they would just let the dogs loose on them. It was a waste of their energy to have even a casual conversation with that bunch of trash. Serenity said bitterly, ¡°They¡®re still my dad¡®s siblings, after all. I was just so angry that I had to chase them away. ¡± ¡°That¡®s how it should be. Sure, they¡®re your father¡®s siblings, but they¡®re also too heartless! Normal people wouldn¡®t have been able to do the terribly abominable things that they did! Serenity, you don¡®t have to feel guilty. You did the right thing. We support you!¡± Serenity thanked everyone for understanding her and for not thinking that she had gone overboard. Once the crowd had dispersed, Serenity returned to her shop, holding her broom. Zachary looked at her soberly with his dark eyes. Every time she ran into trouble, she never gave him the chance to help her. She moved too fast. She would jump into action the moment she got her hands on the broom, and then managed to chase them away in the blink of an eye. She even put on such a look of suffering so that the onlookers wouldpletely be on her side and help her condemn those trashy rtives of hers. He was a hero without a battleground. Serenity ced the broom back in its original position. ¡°They ran fast, or else I¡¯d have beat them to a pulp!¡± she said as she walked toward Zachary. Stopping in front of him, she looked at him and said in thanks, ¡°Mr. York, hanks for helping me shock my aunts and the rest to the point they only dared to use their mouths. You made them afro aid to raise their hands against me. ¡±Zachary was the lead actor for the first act and served the purpose of shocking them. She then took the lead for the second act and chased those people away. serenity felt that the responsibility of chasing the trash away rightfully fell to her. Zachary was silent for a long moment before he said, ¡°Serenity, you should give me a chance to do something in the future. Or else, others will say you married a useless man, and that doesn¡¯t look good for you either. ¡± Chapter 267 Chapter 267 Chapter 267 ¨C Serenity smiled in embarrassment as she said, ¡°The next time I run into trouble I can¡¯t deal with myself, I¡¯ll give you that chance to perform. ¡± If she could deal with it herself, she did not need him to do anything. So that she would not owe him anything. ¡°What sort of things would you be unable to deal with yourself?¡± Zachary asked. Serenityughed. ¡°Tons and tons of stuff. It¡¯s just that I can¡¯t think of anything right now. Mr. York, you can go and do your stuff. ¡± Zachary looked at her in silence for a long while, then said mildly, ¡°I¡¯m going back to the office then. What time are you closing up tonight? I¡¯lle over and wait for you so we can go home together. I¡¯m worried those trashy people will try and block your car again. ¡± ¡°They won¡¯t. It¡¯s the kind of thing only Noah would do, being young and aggressive. They¡¯ve already suffered a loss once, so they won¡¯t dare try a second time. They might look very aggressive, but they¡¯re cowards to the bone. ¡°You go ahead with your work. There¡¯s no need to worry about me. I¡¯m closing up veryte tonight. I might also swing by my sister¡¯s ce before going home. ¡± To be honest, Serenity just did not want to go home with Zachary. ¡°How¡¯s Liberty¡¯s job search going?¡± Zachary did not tell Serenity about Hank Brown¡¯s affair. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. He would ask Josh to look into it, but Josh had not gotten back to him yet. It was best to hold his tongue while the situation was still unclear. If it happened to be untrue, he would end up being the viin who destroyed Hank Brown and Liberty¡¯s marriage. At the mention of her sister¡¯s job search, Serenity¡¯s expression turned gloomy. ¡°My sister¡¯s been going out every day looking for a job but hasn¡¯t been able to find one yet. This is the first time I¡¯m realizing it¡¯s really hard to get a job,¡± she said. Before her marriage, she had been considered a white¨Ccor worker. She had only left the industry for a little more than three years, but it was already so hard to make a return to it. Zachary consoled her. ¡°Take it slow. It¡¯s not a good time to look for jobs now. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m thinking if my sister really can¡¯t get a job, I¡¯ll lend her money to start her own business or open her own shop or something. That way, she can take care of Sonny and earn some money at the same time. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s an idea. ¡± Zachary also thought that it might be a better idea for Liberty to start her own business because Sonny was still very young and needed his mother¡¯spanionship and care. ¡°You should hurry and go back to work. ¡± ¡°Alright. ¡± Zachary left with the depressing feeling that came with being chased away by his wife. After he left, Serenity returned to her seat behind the counter, took out her craft materials, and started working on her crafts. On the other end After dinner, Liberty carried her son with one hand and pushed the stroller out the door with the other After going downstairs, she put her son in the stroller and pushed him in the direction of the outskirts of themunity, intending to buy form as well as diapers for her son. ¡°Hey, Liberty. Where are you going with Sonny?¡± On her way out, any acquaintances she ran into would greet Liberty and stop for a bit to y with Sonny Liberty smiled and said, ¡°I¡®m going to buy form and diapers. ¡± After the episode where Liberty chased her husband down five streets while wielding a knife, she became famous within themunity. Liberty was usually always smiling and looked like she had a good temper. Everyone said that you could not tell from her usual smile that she was daring enough to chase her husband down five streets while wielding a knife. It was retaliation for her husband¡®s abuse, but not many women would dare to do such a thing. She became the topic of everyone¡®s conversation after tea for a while. However, people remained polite when they ran into her. The people in themunity were more familiar with Liberty and her sister than Hank Brown, who they had met only a few times. The thing was, whenever Hank Brown returned, he was always in a rush and did not have the leisure to make conversation with the people in themunity. Lately, Liberty had lost some weight due to the stress of the job search. She knew in her heart that when she went for interviews, the interviewers were internally disgusted by her obesity and ugliness. Liberty thought to herself that from tomorrow, she had to wake up early to go running in the mornings. She would work on finding a job while working on losing weight. Even her own sister had advised her to lose weight¨Cand it was not just because of her outer appearance. She was thinking more so for her health. She was so fat that she was suffering from fatty liver disease. Chapter 268 Chapter 268 Chapter 268 ¨C Fatty liver could develop into cirrhosis if it became severe, and Liberty did not want to be a cirrhotic patient. Having left the walls of themunity, Liberty walked as she pushed her son¡¯s stroller toward the store to buy form. In the past, it was always her sister who helped her buy the form and brought it home. It was a little bit far to go there on foot, but she just thought of it as shopping and taking a walk. ¡°Daddy. ¡± Sonny suddenly called for his father. Liberty looked around frantically but did not see Hank Brown. ¡°Sonny, did you see Daddy?¡± she asked her son. Sonny pointed at a car parked by the roadside as he called for his father. What he meant was that the car was his father¡¯s car. Liberty looked at the car her son was pointing at. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. It was the same make and model as her husband¡¯s but the number te was not Hank Brown¡¯s. She smiled. ¡°Sonny, that¡¯s not Daddy¡¯s car. It¡¯s just the same make and model. The number¡¯s different, so it¡¯s not your daddy¡¯s car. ¡± The kid rarely interacted with his father but could remember his father¡¯s car. Liberty thought her son must have been missing his father and said, ¡°Sonnyare you missing Daddy? Mommy will call Daddy and let Sonny talk to Daddy, okay?¡± After Hank Brown moved back home, he still left early and came backte as he did before. As Liberty no longer waited upon him, he even stopped going home for lunch and just had his lunch outside. Liberty could not be bothered to care either. The episode with the domestic violence had be an obstacle in their rtionship neither of them could get over. Liberty did not feel like she was at fault. Hank was even less inclined to feel he was at fault. There was no way he would lower his pride and admit he was wrong to Liberty. In any case, the two of them were now ufortable bedfellows. No matter the state their rtionship was in, Hank was still Sonny¡¯s biological father. ¡°Okay. ¡± Sonny answered obediently. Liberty then took her phone out from the pouch on the stroller. Every time she left the house, she had the habit of putting her phone in there because it was convenient. After getting through to Hank, he took a long time to answer the phone. ¡°What now?¡± Hank Brown¡¯s tone was not very kind. He was currently at the business reception at Wilt spoon Hotel with Jessica Yates. Everyone in attendance was either elite in the industry or managers ofpanies both big and small. ¡°Your son misses you. ¡± Liberty could tell he was not in a kind mood and hurriedly said. She immediately passed the phone to her son so her son and her husband could talk. Sonny took the phone and said in his childish voice, ¡°Daddy. ¡± Hank Brown might treat Liberty badly, but he was still very gentle with his own son. He said a few things to his son over the phone, and without caring if his son understood, not even two minutes had passed when he promptly told his son, ¡°Sonny, Daddy¡¯s going to work now, okay? When Daddy¡¯s eared some money, I¡¯ll buy you some toys. ¡± ¡°Not giving to guh,¡± Sonny said abruptly. Hank was dumbfounded for a second before he realized his son was probably talking about his sister¡¯s third kid. That nephew of his was always trying to snatch Sonny¡¯s toys, and Sonny remembered that. eughed and said, ¡°Okay, okay. Daddy¡¯s only going to buy toys for Sonny, not buying any for him. Sonny, pass the phone to your mommy. Daddy wants to say a few things to Mommy. ¡± Sonny obediently returned the phone to his mother. Chapter 269 Chapter 269 Chapter 269 ¨C Liberty had just put the phone to her ear when she heard Hank Brown scolding her through the phone, ¡°What do you normally teach Sonny? You¡®ve taught Sonny to have no respect, no friendship, and no spirit of sharing with his cousin! I said I¡®d buy him some toys and he said he didn¡®t want to give them to Lucas. ¡± Liberty¡®s anger sparked too after that tongueshing by her husband. She said coldly, ¡°What do I teach Sonny? Is that Sonny¡®s fault? Lucas always tries to snatch Sonny¡¯s toys and even hits him! Do you think Sonny¡®s some sort of dough ball for others to knead and pinch?¡± ¡°It¡®s clearly Lucas¡® fault. As a father, you don¡®t protect your own son¨Cfine! But you¡®re even ming him for not being understanding? Should we just let Sonny give up all of his toys to Lucas, and just let Lucas hit him again?! ¡°Lucas has been thoroughly spoiled by your sister and your parents. He¡®s always bullying Sonny. Are you guys all blind? Can¡®t you see that? Hank Brown, Sonny is your son. Your own son! Lucas is your nephew. Can¡®t you even tell which is more important between your son and your nephew?¡± Hank was struck speechless by Liberty¡®s questioning. He swiftly replied, ¡°I can¡®t talk about this with you right now. I¡®m busy. Let¡®s do this, where did you bring Sonny? Your surroundings sound noisy. ¡± ¡°And where are you? You¡®re not in the office, are you? Your surroundings sound noisy too. We¡®re out of form for Sonny, and we¡®re almost out of diapers too. I brought him out to buy form. You didn¡®t go halves on our son¨Cwe didn¡®t each carry him for five months. So you¡®ve got to give me the money for his form, got it? Transfer the money for the form to me right now. ¡± Her sister said she had to fight for what she needed. Liberty still had money to buy form for her son, but her son was also Hank¡®s. Hank also had the responsibility to raise the child. It waspletely justified for her to ask him for money to buy form. ¡°Day in, day out, you only know to ask me for money! I¡®m not a bank, and I don¡®t have a money printing machine either! Where on earth would I get that much money? If you have the capability, you should earn money yourself! All you know is to eat, eat and eat. You¡®re so fat, you look like a ball. You¡®re as hideous as a monster. ¡°Do you think I have it easy? You¡®re reliant on me for everything at home. I can¡®t even bring myself to spend the little I earn and yet you ask me for money every day! You¡®re just adding to my stress level. ¡± Liberty acted like she could not hear hisints and insisted. ¡°Transfer the money for the form to me right now. If I don¡®t receive it in the next few minutes, I¡®ll bring Sonny to the office to get the money from you. Let me ask Mr. Hackett while I¡¯m at it if your sry isn¡®t enough to support your family. ¡± Hank continued to curse into the phone a little more before reluctantly saying, ¡°Fine. How much do you need for the form?¡± From the moment he persuaded Liberty to resign and leave thepany, he did not want Liberty to ever return to the ce they once used to work at together, especially now that Liberty was fat and ugly. There were a lot of employees in thepany who had worked with Liberty before. With the way Liberty looked now, it would make him feel ashamed. Of course, he was also afraid Liberty would hear some rumors while she was at the office. He was not ready to get divorced yet. For now, he could not let Liberty find out about him and Jessica. ¡°I usually buy seven cans of it at once. They¡¯ll give two cans for free. It¡¯ll cost two thousand and four hundred dors. ¡± Hank muttered, ¡°Why is it so expensive? What sort of form are you feeding Sonny? Is it imported?¡± ¡°It¡¯s locally produced. The imported ones are even more expensive. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m transferring a thousand two hundred dors to you. We¡¯re going halves on this. You have a share in raising our son too. And anyway, I don¡¯t have any more to give you. With this month¡¯s sry, I¡¯ve paid the house loan installment and I¡¯ve paid off the car loan in full. I¡¯m nning to change to a better car, so I have to save some money for the down payment. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± He was now a manager, and many employees in thepany who were not in positions as good as his were driving better cars than he was, so he wanted to change to a better, more expensive car. That way, when he took Jessica out on dates, she could be a little morefortable too. She said she had been in a Mercedes¨CBenz SUV and that it was much morefortable than his sedan was. With Hank¡¯s current sry and his savings, he could afford a Mercedes¨CBenz SUV. He nned to transfer the ownership of his current car to Jessica so that she¡¯d have a car to drive instead of having to squeeze on ublic transport whenever she got off work. Chapter 270 Chapter 270 Chapter 270 ¨C Jessica Yates was not repulsed by it and seemed like she could not be happier. Hank thought Jessica was truly in love with him and was not after his money. He thought she truly wanted to grow old with him and was not ying around¨Cthat was why she kept herst line of defense and would not have sex with him. She was serious about it, so Hank even more serious about it. got He also promised Jessica that once he saved even more money, he would give her a new car. Jessica was so grateful that she fiercely kissed him a good number of times, dazing him into forgetting which way was up and which way was down. Liberty still wanted to say something but Hank had already hung up and promptly transferred the thousand two hundred dors to Liberty for her to buy form with. Although she did not manage to get the full amount of two thousand dors and four hundred bucks and had only gotten half of that, Liberty immediately epted the money he had transferred. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Was it your wife?¡± When Hank answered his phone earlier, Jessica wisely walked away. Jessica only walked over holding two sses of red wine once she saw that Hank had hung up. Tonight, Jessica was dressed like a rich heiress in a brand¨Cname evening dress. She was young and already beautiful, but with the help of the dress, she looked even more beautiful. She had a hot body too. She attracted the sideways nces of countless men the moment she appeared at the reception with Hank Jessica was very cocky at heart. She was very proud of her looks and her body. Hank had been very willing to spend money on her to dress her up. Not only did he buy her a beautiful evening dress but he also bought her a gold ne, a pair of pendant earrings, and two gold bracelets for her to wear to tonight¡¯s reception. Jessica felt she may not have looked as good as those rich heiresses out there, but she did not look bad either. ¡°It was. She was asking for money. All she does every day is ask for money as if I¡¯m a bank. ¡± Hank was still grumbling even after he transferred the money to Liberty. He was very unhappy and felt that Liberty should not have asked him for money for the form. Jessica passed a ss of wine t Hank and said, ¡°Aren¡¯t you guys splitting everything by halves? You¡¯re not even going home to eat lunch now, and she still has the nerve to ask you for money? What for?¡± Hank¡¯s money would belong to her in the end. Jessica did not want Hank¡¯s money to be spent on Liberty. ¡°We¡¯re out of form for Sonny. She wanted money from me to buy form. I don¡¯t even know what¡®s in it that the form¡®s so expensive. Each time she purchases it, it costs two thousand and four hundred dors. I told her not to stop breastfeeding so early on and to let Sonny breastfeed until he entered kindergarten and wean off then. That would have saved so much money, but she didn¡®t want to. She stopped breastfeeding after Sonny turned one and started feeding him form instead, which became an added expense. ¡°Out of the two thousand four hundred dors, I transferred a thousand two hundred to her, ording to our agreement to split everything by halves. It¡®s not a loss for me, anyway. No matter how I cut it, Sonny¡®s my son. ¡± Hank still loved his son. He just did not like his wife. Once a man fell out of love with a woman, all of her good points would be ws. 1 That was exactly how Hank saw Liberty. In his eyes, the current Liberty was not worth a single thing.N?velDrama.Org ? content. Chapter 271 Chapter 271 Chapter 271 ¨C Jessica said, ¡°It takes both husband and wife to have a child. You¡®re not wrong to only pay for your half. ¡± Of course, Hank felt that he was above any fault. He took a sip of wine and replied, ¡°The Wiltspoon Hotel lives up to its name as the finest hotel. The red wine here is more exceptional than what we usually have. ¡± Jessica responded with a smile, ¡°Well, considering the event, I wouldn¡®t expect any less. It¡®s a pity that only small¨Ctime CEOs and elites of our field are here. Major CEOs like Mr. Stone and Mr. York aren¡®t attending. ¡± She would love to check out an influential man like Mr. York again. Jessica stumbled upon the man of the hour thest time. s, she could not get a look at Mr. York¡®s face. She wondered if Mr. York was as distinguished, aloof, and handsome as described in the rumors. ¡°We¡®ll always have the chance to meet people like Mr. York and Mr. Stone in the future. ¡± Hank consoled Jessica. It was a situation he found regrettable, more so than Jessica, as he was the young professional while she was merely his secretary. If he could have a quick word with a man like Mr. York, Hank could expect to jump ship to a better opportunity, perhaps even work at York Corporation. ¡°Hank, I hope you can be a big CEO someday too. ¡± Jessica dreamed about Hank flying solo and being his own boss with his ownpany. She would edge out Liberty and be Mrs. Brown, the wife of a CEO. Hank grinned and answered, ¡°I¡®ll be my own boss when I establish enoughwork and capital. ¡± The pair enjoyed a good chat andughed for a bit before saying hello to acquaintances in the room to talk shop. Jessica remained by Hank¡®s side, chiming in asionally when Hank talked business with others. She believed that Liberty¡®s appearance would be an eyesore to others if thetter were here tonight. Liberty would be a bad reflection on Hank as people would mock Hank for having such a fat and ugly wife. Besides, Liberty was out of touch with society and could no longer keep up with the times. Even if Liberty were to attend the social event with Hank, she would not be able to get a word in on the business side of things. Liberty¡®s career break might only be for three¨Codd years, but three years were enough to change many people and things in these rapid¨Cdeveloping times. ¡°Mr. Stevens, who¡®s that young man there? Everyone seems to act nice to him. ¡± Hank asked one of the CEOs who had a partnership with Waltham Electronics. The young man Hank was looking at was none other than Shawn. Mr. Stevens watched as Shawn was in his element, socializing with the crowd. Mr. Stevens remarked with a smile, ¡°Ah, Mr. Brown. It must be your first time attending this kind of event. It makes sense why you wouldn¡®t know him. I guess he¡®s the most honorable guest tonight. ¡°He¡®s Shawn Lowe, the sessor of Lowe Enterprise. However, he hasn¡®t taken over thepany yet and is still in training, but he¡®s the CEO¡®s son, the young heir of the Lowes. Many people are being nice because they know who he is. Nothing wrong with making nice with the future CEO of Lowe Enterprise. ¡±Mr. Stevens exined, ¡°Lowe Enterprise is nopetition to York Corporation and Stone Group in Wilt spoon, but it¡®s still a much bigger corporation than ours. The Lowes are quite an influential and rich family. Shawn usually attends the upper society evets. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Mr. Lowe probably arranged for him toe to tonight¡®s event. ¡°Since he¡®s green in the business world, he needs to hone his people skills andwork. We¡®re professional elites in our field. Shawn will know the extent of o Chapter 272 Chapter 272 Chapter 272 ¨C There would be a change of senior executives every time the head of thepany was reced. The new boss would want his own people around him. Following Mr. Stevens¡® exnation, Hank took an instant liking to Shawn. Hank asked Mr. Stevens with a smile, ¡°Are you close with Mr. Lowe? Can you introduce us? Lowe Enterprise has a subsidiarypany dealing with electronics. There are opportunities for us to work together, but we¡®d need someone to hook us up. ¡± Waltham Electronics did business with thepany Mr. Stevens was working in. That was how Mr. Stevens came to know Shawn. Mr. Stevens smiled and replied, ¡°Shawn seems to be getting weary from the ttery. He¡®ll soon find a spot to sit down. I¡®ll hook you up and introduce you to him when hees over. ¡± Hank beamed. Grateful to Mr. Stevens, he raised his ss and said, ¡°To you, Mr. Stevens. ¡± Mr. Stevens clinked sses with Hank and took a couple of sips of wine before ncing at Jessica suggestively. He said to Hank, ¡°Ms. Yates looks beautiful tonight. Mr. Brown, you¡®re one lucky man. ¡°Younded yourself a highly¨Cpaid managerial role at quite a young age and have a beautifuldy by your side. Anybody would want to be in your position, Mr. Brown. ¡± People like Hank who had an affair with their secretaries were not umon. It was an unspoken fact. When it came to business engagements, men would only bring their wives as plus¨Cones if they had a loving rtionship with their wives, and if their wives were up to the task. Otherwise, in most cases, the men would bring along their secretaries or mistresses. This was the reason true heirs like Zachary and Clive would not attend such an event. They belonged to a circle where the attendees of status and power would only bring along their wives to every social event. The wives of the rich and powerful had their ownmunity that no mistress, despite ousting the wife, could fit in. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. These influential and wealthy wives refused to be associated with a husband¨Cstealer. Hank happily looked at Jessica and responded in glee, ¡°Ms. Yates is my right¨Chand woman. I can¡®t do anything without her. ¡± With rosiness creeping up her cheeks, Jessica gracefully replied,¡± Mr. Stevens, you tter me so. I might take your words seriously. I have nothing on Scarlet. ¡± Scarlet was Mr. Steven¡®s lover and secretary. As Mr. Stevens would bring Scarlet along to business meetings at Waltham Electronics, Jessica got to know Scarlet from there. The girls had a great friendship outside work. The woman also taught Jessica to lead Hank on so that Hank would fall harder for her. Jessica¡®s chances of getting rid of Liberty and taking her ce as Mrs. Brown would only be higher. Mr. Stevens said with a smile, ¡°You¡®re all wonderful girls. ¡± Shawn finally seized the chance to leave those people who were all over him. Spotting Hank and Mr. Stevens hanging among the lesser crowd, Shawn made a beeline over. ¡°Mr. Lowe. ¡± With Shawn approaching, Mr. Stevens got up and courteously greeted him. Shawn immediately replied, ¡°Please, call me Shawn, Mr. Stevens. ¡± He was presently a measly employee at Lowe Enterprise. Mr. Stevens wasted no time switching to a more intimate name. As Hank rose to his feet, Mr. Stevens introduced Hank to Shawn. Chapter 273 Chapter 273 Chapter 273 ¨C ¡°Hello, Mr. Lowe. ¡± Hank extended his right hand to shake Shawn¡®s hand. During the handshake, Shawn remarked, ¡°I believe I¡®ve heard of your name before, Mr. Brown. ¡± Hank¡®s name sounded familiar. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Hank was ttered. ¡°Have you heard of me, Mr. Lowe?¡± It was a pleasant surprise that Hank made a name for himself among the professionals to the point that the unacquainted Mr. Lowe had heard of his name. Shawn replied with a grin, ¡°Your name rings a bell. I must¡®ve heard it from someone, but I had never met you in person. Well, that¡®s changed tonight. ¡± Hank quickly pulled out his business card and handed it to Shawn. Curling his lips, he responded, ¡°Mr. Lowe, it¡®s an honor to meet you. This is my business card. I look forward to working with you if we have the chance. ¡± Shawn took the business card from Hank for a nce before putting it away. His eyes then shifted toward Jessica who had a broad smile on her face. Although the woman was a stunner, Shawn only took a fleeting nce before looking away. In Shawn¡®s eyes, the best woman was Serenity. He had no eyes for anyone but Serenity. With the lot gesturing for Shawn to sit down, everybody started drinking and talking business. It was a pleasant conversation. Liberty came out of a baby shop after purchasing form and diapers. While the form milk was stored in the stroller, there were too many packs of diapers to fit the stroller. The shopkeeper said the diapers were on a buy¨Cfive¨Cfree¨Cone offer, so Liberty bought six packs in total. The stroller was not made for much storage. Helpless, Liberty redialed Hank¡®s number. Hank did not answer his phone. She called multiple times, and Hank only picked up her call on the sixth try. ¡°What now, Liberty? Don¡®t you know I¡®m busy? Do you think I work in customer service and can take your calls 24/7? Don¡®t call me again unless it¡®s an emergency. It¡®s disrupting my work. ¡± ¡°When are youing back?¡± Immune to his criticisms, Liberty ignored his questioning and went on to ask her question. ¡°Not that soon. What do you want? I¡®m going to hang up if there¡®s nothing else. ¡± ¡°I bought form and diapers, but I can¡®t carry them back. I was hoping you could pick me and Sonny up on your way back. ¡± Hank peevishly snapped back, ¡°It¡®s your fault for buying a lot. You should only get as much as you can carry. I¡®m busy. I don¡®t have time to pick you up. Can¡®t you call your sister? Didn¡®t she have a new car? Call her to pick you up. ¡± ULT He then terminated the call. 111 Since Serenity¡®s husband worked at York Corporation, his sry must be high. Serenity had only been married for a little over a month when Zachary bought a car for her and paid it in full. Hank believed it was great that his sister¨Cinw had a car as Serenity could take Liberty and Sonny here and there. At least, Liberty would not need to call him for anything. It was annoying. After her husband hung up on her, Liberty fell silent for a moment but did not call her sister. Liberty put four packs of diapers on the stroller and carried two packs by hand as she struggled to push her son in the stroller forward. The tiny stroller was used as a wagon. The mother and son drew a lot of attention on the streets. It did not take long before Liberty was worn out. Liberty¡®s mind wandered ack to when she had just gotten married. No matter where she was or what she was doing, Hank would put everything down and drive over to pick her up at a phone call. Now, he would hang up on her whenever she needed his help. With something on her mind, Liberty did not pay attention to the pavement and rammed the stroller onto a brick. Only God knew who threw a brick there. No one even bothered to move it away. Since the stroller was overloaded with stuff and Liberty held it up with one hand, the stroller tipped to the side. Sonny tumbled to the ground and cried. Chapter 274 Chapter 274 Chapter 274 ¨C ¡°Sonny. ¡± Without time to pick up the can of form that rolled to the middle of the road, Liberty flew to pick up her son and examined him for any injuries. She asked, ¡°Where does it hurt, Sonny? Do you feel pain anywhere? Tell mama. ¡± ¡°Mama. ¡± Sonny bawled and clung to Liberty¡¯s neck, refusing to let go. He was not hurt, but it was quite a scare. ¡°Bang!¡± It was a loud noise. Liberty turned her gaze to the source of the noise. A car knocked the can of form away, but as luck would have it, the can of form smashed onto the car¡¯s windshield on its way down from the air. The weight of the can and the gravity of the fall cracked the windshield to smithereens. The driver of the car mmed hard on the brakes. Startled by the sudden turn of events, Sonny stopped crying andtched tightly around the nape of his mother¡¯s neck. Liberty had a good look at the car¡¯s logo. It was a Porsche! It was a high¨Cperformance sedan! Uh¡­ Was she supposed topensate for the car repairs? When Liberty scratched a Maybach thest time, Mr. Lewis only asked her to pay part of the damages out of respect for her brother -inw as her brother¨Cinw knew the car owner. Liberty would not be able to afford to pay for the damages this time. She watched in dismay as the car owner stepped out of the car. The towering and brawny figure looked rather familiar. Uh¡­ Was it not Mr. Lewis? Why was it him again? Talk about coincidence. Duncan inspected his windshield and concluded that he would need to rece it. He quickly got the full picture of what had happened when he spotted the tumbling can of form, Liberty¡¯s overturned stroller on the pavement, and a few packs of diapers plus cans of form scattered on the ground. Once he realized that it was Liberty, Duncan could not believe his bad luck. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. It was this heavy woman every single time! He turned around and got back into the car. Thinking that he was going to drive away, Liberty let out a sigh of relief. To her horror, he drove the car to park at the side of the road. After getting down from the car, Duncan went to pick up the can of form and came over to turn the stroller upright. He also gathered te diapers and other cans of form, but since the stroller could not amodate that much stuff, he ced the packs of diapers against the stroller. ¡°Ms. Hunt, do you have a grudge against my car? You scratched my car thest time, and now my windshield cracked because of you. ¡± Duncan had a terrifying presence due to his tall and robust build and the scar on his face. Liberty was guilt¨Cridden and scared. Holding onto her son, Liberty stuttered, ¡°Mr. ¡­. Mr. Lewis¡­ Um¡­ It was an ident ¡­ I didn¡¯t¡­ mean it¡­¡± Duncan red at her. It made her freak out more. ¡°Mr. Lewis, you can¡¯t me me for it. You were speeding. Didn¡¯t you see there was something on the road?¡± Duncan found it amusing. ¡°Are you saying that I was blind?¡± Liberty was without a word. Many cars drove by, but none hit the can of form except Duncan. It could only be exined by him driving at high speed. Since Duncan stepped on the gas, it would probably be toote to hit the brakes or swerve to the side even if he saw the can of form. Liberty tried to justify herself Chapter 275 Chapter 275 Chapter 275 ¨C Duncan stared at Liberty who mmed up at that point. Since his best friend married Serenity and this plump woman was his best friend¡®s sister¨Cinw, Duncan was not going to let Liberty pay for the repairs. Liberty did not mean for it to happen anyway. It was partly his fault for driving too fast. His eyes on her made Liberty nervous. Holding her son tight, Liberty was about to speak when Duncan jumped in with questions. ¡°Why did you get so many things? Can¡®t you call your husband to help? Maybe don¡®t get so much stuff all at once. ¡± ¡°I¡®m a little far from home, so I called my husband, but he was too busy to pick me up. I thought I should just carry everything home. I didn¡¯t see the brick there, and the stroller flipped over when I bumped into it. I didn¡®t think you would knock onto the can of form that rolled out to the road. ¡± Liberty murmured, ¡°I had to attend to my child since he was crying. I didn¡®t have time to pick up the things that were scattered on the ground. ¡°Mr. Lewis, it was an ident this time. ¡± After a brief silence, she added, ¡°Would you let me pay only half for the repairs? It was an honest mistake, and you were driving too fast. You¡®re also responsible for what just happened. N?velDrama.Org ? content. ¡± Duncan thought to himself, ¡®I only requested that she paid nine thousand bucks for the damages the last time since Zachary called me. To be honest, I had to cover a lot more of the repairs. ¡® Zachary did not mention that he had married Serenity. Duncan would not have let Liberty pay a dime had he known about the marriage. Duncan reached out to pick up the diapers. Liberty stared at him in confusion. Duncan put all the diapers into his car and came back for the stroller before telling her, ¡°Get into the car. I¡¯ll drive you and your son home. ¡± The husband of this heavy woman must not be very nice to her. Despite the wife¡¯s call for help, he was nowhere to be found. Sure, work was important, but was it more important than his wife and child? If Duncan were in the husband¡¯s shoes, he would be the first on the scene to attend to his wife¡¯s needs. Nevertheless, Duncan guessed that her husband probably did not take Liberty¡¯s outward appearance too kindly. She was on the heavy side. Instead of taking Duncan up on his offer, Liberty carried her son and charged up to snatch the stroller back. Duncan looked at her puzzledly. ¡°I appreciate the thought, Mr. Lewis, but it¡¯s fine. I¨CI can slowly make my way back home. I can also call my sister to pick me up. She has a car. You don¡¯t have to drive us. ¡± Duncan could take a hint. He might nugget it in the beginning, but now hecould see that Liberty had her guard up against him. Amused, he said, ¡°I¡¯m not a pervert. I mean no harm. You don¡¯t have to be wary of me. I just thought about giving you a lift since you¡¯re with a child and a lot of stuff. From thest incident, you should know that your brother¨Cin¨Cw, Zachary, is friends with me. ¡± Liberty knew that. However, they were unrted by any means. Plus, getting a lift from him was thest thing she wanted to do since the two times they met were under deplorable circumstances. ¡°Get in. You might not be tired, but your child is. Your son is about to nod off. How long is it going to take you to walk home?¡± Liberty was about to decline when God refused to let it her way. It started to rain. It was chilly in November. The rain brought about the wintriness. Although Liberty wore a short¨Csleeved shirt, she did not feel the cold probably because she was protected by ayer of fat. ¡°It¡¯s raining. I don¡¯t think you have an umbre. Get into the car. A bit of rain might not harm you, but your son could catch a cold. You¡¯d feel bad if your son gets sick. ¡± Duncan said as he took over the stroller and ced it in the car. Liberty hesitated for a bit before getting into Duncan¡¯s car. ¡°Ms. Hunt, I¡¯m only doing this because Zachary¡¯s a friend. Don¡¯t read too much into it. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not. ¡± pe pe Chapter 276 Chapter 276 Chapter 276 ¨C Liberty instinctively responded. She did not read too much into the situation. Firstly, Liberty was past the age of dreaming. Secondly, she was married, and thirdly, she was no longer the belle she was before marriage. Liberty was now a fat and ugly woman. Duncan grinned. ¡°Let¡®s talk about the repairs. ¡± It threw Liberty into a tizzy. She did not have much savings left. Judging by the damages this time, the repairs must cost a lot more. She would have to drain her bank ount to pay Duncan and endure Hank¡®s name¨Ccalling for being pathetic. The stroller merely scraped Duncan¡®s vehicle in thest incident, but she had to fork out nine thousand bucks. ¡°Where do you live?¡± ¡°Bright Boulevard. ¡± ¡°That¡®s a good catchment area. You made a good choice and bought the ce quickly. ¡± The houses at Bright Boulevard were all sold. ¡°My husband bought the house before we got married. He¡®s still paying the mortgage. Mr. Lewis, how much would the repairs cost? Um¡­ It¡®s not that I want to pass the buck or refuse to pay, I¡®m a housewife without a source of ie. I don¡®t have much savings left. I probably won¡®t have enough to cover the cost. ¡°Can I pay in installments?¡± Liberty probingly asked, ¡°I¡®m trying to find a job now. I can promise that I¡®ll pay everything I owe once I have a job and a steady ie. ¡± Behind the wheel, Duncan replied, ¡°No need to be nervous. I don¡®t expect you to pay this time. I only asked you to pay for the scratch so that it would serve as a reminder to watch out on the street. It would be unfortunate for you if you ran your stroller onto anyone else. Don¡®t forget, your son is in this car. ¡± LL LE Color washed off Liberty¡®splexion as scenarios of what could happen entered her mind. ¡°I don¡®t think it matters whether you pay for the repairs. It has only been a little over a month before you damaged another one of my cars. ¡± Duncan was not going to take his luxury sedans to the road in case he bumped into her again. Liberty was embarrassed, not knowing what to say. However, she was relieved that Duncan was generous enough to write off the repair cost. The pair were not friends. Duncan only helped out because of theirmon friend, Zachary. Since Liberty said nothing, Duncan left the conversation at that. It took less than ten minutes to arrive at Bright Boulevard by car. Considering that Liberty had a toddler and many things to carry, Duncan told Liberty to swipe her residential card to gain ess into the neighborhood. He then drove the car into the gatedmunity under Liberty¡®s guidance and pulled up in front of Liberty¡®s residential building. Duncan got down from the car and moved her things down. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis. ¡± Liberty was grateful. ¡°I¡®ll carry your stuff upstairs. ¡± ¡°It¡®s fine. You can watch my things here. It¡®ll only take two trips, so it won¡®t be long. There¡®s an elevator. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Duncan watched as she carried her son while pushing the stroller away. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. A few minutester, Liberty came down the stairs alone. ¡°Is there anyone else at home now?¡± Duncan asked in passing. Chapter 277 Chapter 277 Chapter 277 ¨C Liberty looked at Duncan. Duncan knew that she was overthinking it again. The woman was rather distrustful of him. He exined, ¡°My point is, don¡®t leave your son home alone while youe down to take the things if there¡®s no one else in the house. It¡®s not safe. ¡± Her son looked to be around two or three years old. Kids that age tended to be active and cheeky, intrigued to touch and y with anything and everything. There was no turning back if something happened to the kid for fooling around with something dangerous. ¡°Thank you for your advice, Mr. Lewis. I¡®ll head upstairs no. ¡± Liberty carried the packs of diapers and thanked Duncan before hurrying back upstairs. She thought to herself that Duncan might not look the part of a nice guy since he was big, strong, and had a terrifying scar on his face, but he was a considerate and attentive man. It was a reminder never to judge a book by its cover. Duncan waited until Liberty was gone before returning to his car and driving away. While on the road, he gave Zachary a call. The moment Zachary was on the other line, he said, ¡°Zachary, I think your sister¨Cinw has something against my cars. Do you know? The windshield of my Porsche is cracked because of her. ¡± ¡°What happened? Do you crash into her, or did she run into you?¡± Zachary was concerned with anything to do with his sister-inw. His sister-inw had always been nothing but nice to him. ¡°Nothing of that sort. ¡± Duncan recounted the whole incident to his best friend. At the end of the story, he said, ¡°Zachary, do you think your sister inw has something against my cars? I¡®m going to the car dealership tomorrow to get myself a hundred¨Cthousand¨Cdor car. I¡®ll just drive that car from now on in case I run into your sister ¨Cinw damaging my expensive car. The repair costs will kill me. ¡± This had happened twice now. The first time was not that bad since it was a scratch. The repairs did not cost a lot. This incident was worse than the first time. God knows if the damage next time would be greater. Zachary was speechless. He was at a loss for words. It was such a coincidence that his sister¨Cinw was involved every time. Zachary would have teased that fate had brought Duncan and Liberty together if Liberty was not already married. ¡°Only for you, I didn¡®t let her pay for the damages. ¡± ¡°How much does the repair cost? I¡¯ll pay for her. ¡± Zachary offered generously. ¡°It¡®s fine. I¡®m not short of cash. I just want to let it out of my chest. That reminds me, Zachary. It seems to be that your sister¨Cinw doesn¡®t get on well with her husband. She bought a lot of stuff and called her husband to pick her up, but her husband refused. ¡± Any ordinary man would tell their wives to call a cab if they could not make the trip. Since Liberty had no ie, she probably did not want to spend the cash even if her husband told her to get a cab. Duncan believed he was overthinking the whole situation. With a deadpan voice, Zachary replied, ¡°If my eyes didn¡®t deceive me, I guess her husband is attending the event at the Wilt spoon Hotel with a hot and beautiful woman right now. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡± Duncan answered, ¡°¡­ No wonder. So, her husband is cheating on her. ¡± ¡°I can¡®t say if he¡®s cheating on her, but I got Josh on the case. Josh will gather evidence of his infidelity if he¡®s having an affair. As of yet, Josh hasn¡®t given me a report. ¡± The family Serenity cared about the most was her sister. Zachary believed that as Serenity¡®s husband, he should lend a hand if his sister¨Cinw was facing the ultimate betrayal. He had a problem with Hank too. ¡°You seem to take an interest in your wife¡®s family. In this case, when are you going to let us meet with your wife?¡± Duncan was curious about what made Serenity remarkable for Grandma May to be fond of her. She nagged Zachary for three months until he gave in and married Serenity in return for saving Grandma May¡®s life. Grandma May might not behave like her age and could be not trusted for the littlest things, but her mind could not be any clearer, she was a good judge of character. Chapter 278 Chapter 278 Chapter 278 ¨C Grandma May must have her reasons to take a shine to Serenity. Zachary fell silent for a while before replying, ¡°What¡¯s there to see? She has two eyes, a nose, and a mouth just like everyone else. ¡± ¡°Haha. ¡± Duncan burst outughing. He got the hint that his best friend had no intentions to let them meet with Serenity. Josh probably had met Serenity and knew her well because Josh was nosy and had an information network to get all the info on her. Duncan left the conversation at that. Knowing that his best friend was busy, he quickly hung up the call. Time passed quickly. It was soon dead into the night. Sitting inside the Rolls Royce, Zachary knitted between his brows as the weariness began to take its effect. He must be in over his head in thest few days for trying to cram three days of work into one. Of course, he was tired. ¡°Sir, should I drive to Regent Residences?¡± The chauffeur asked. Slumping against the seat, Zachary closed his eyes and took his time toanswer the chauffeur. Two minutester, he spoke in a gruff voice, ¡°To Brynfield. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Hearing that, Jim could rx. The lives of the bodyguards would be better with Mr. Zachary finally returning to the missus¡® side. Although Mr. Zachary did nothing to the bodyguards, the squad had been on tenterhooks, afraid they might slip up and get it from Mr. Zachary as Mr. Zachary had not been in the best of moods for the past few days. Zachary was not on his way back from the office as he had been out at a business dinner. The journey home would take some time. It took twenty minutes before he arrived at Brynfield. Zachary opened the door to the house and was weed by darkness. Was Serenity not home yet? He turned on the lights and looked at the time. It was eleven o¡¯clock at night. The girl would be home soon. It was a good thing he came upstairs quickly, or his cover would be blown if she caught him stepping out of the Rolls Royce. Zachary had not been home for three days. Yet, he had the feeling that he had been away for a long time. The silent treatment, the temporary separate living arrangement, and the deleting of contacts felt like a long time ago. In reality, it had only been three day. The silent treatment would have carried on if Nana did not intervene to give Zachary an out. There was a maneki¨Cneko and a dragon on the coffee table. Those were the crafts Serenity promised him. Zachary went over and picked up the maneki¨Cneko. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Serenity was good with her hands, breathing life into her crafts. There was a noise at the door. Zachary swiftly put the maneki¨Cneko back on the coffee table, wanting to pretend that he had only come out of his bedroom. However, he still had his suit on. Besides, Serenity already had one foot inside the house. Hence, Zachary gave up on putting up the front. Their gazes met. Serenity broke the silence. ¡°Did you juste home, Mr. York?¡± ¡°Yes. I just arrived. ¡± Zachary calmly picked up the golden dragon. ¡°When did you finish these products? ¡±I put them out on the night you didn¡¯t return home. ¡± Serenity said while approaching him, ¡°Since I¡¯m not allowed in your bedroom, I didn¡¯t put the crafts in your room and put them here instead. I was thinking you¡¯d spot the crafts when youe back and take them into your room. ¡± Chapter 279 Chapter 279 Chapter 279 ¨C Zachary picked up the maneki¨Cneko once more as his wife said, ¡°I made your maneki¨C neko bigger than the one I gave Ms. Stone. I put a lot of effort into it. What do you think? Doesn¡¯t it look lifelike?¡± The mention that his was bigger than Ms. Stone¡®s made Zachary feel good. However, he did not show it on his face and simply hummed faintly, ¡°Yes. ¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°I¡®m d you like them. ¡± She put her car keys on the coffee table and turned around to head to the kitchen. ¡°I¡®m making pasta for supper. Do you want any?¡± She then answered on her own before Zachary could reply, ¡°Oh, I forgot. You don¡®t have the habit of eating supper because it adds pounds. ¡± Zachary thought to himself, ¡®¡­ What more can I say? You said it all. Nevertheless, he was not hungry. Serenity was boiling a pot of pasta in the kitchen. Zachary stood there for a moment before making his way to the kitchen door. Instead of stepping into the kitchen, he stood by the door and watched as Serenity sliced the onions and basil. These were her two favorite ingredients for pasta. She also cooked an egg and some bacon bits. She said she enjoyed a bit of grease in her food. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡®s phone rang. She stopped what she was doing while murmuring, ¡°Who could be calling me at this hour?¡± The moment Serenity saw that it was Shawn, she furrowed her brows and took the call. Zachary heard her saying, ¡°What¡®s the matter, Shawn?¡± It was a call from Shawn! Zachary immediately pricked his ears up. ¡°Serenity, is your brother-inw called Hank Brown?¡± It only hit Shawn why Hank¡®s name sounded familiar when he got home. It seemed to be the name of Serenity¡®s brother¨Cinw. He immediately called Serenity to verify the possibility. Of course, he had his ulterior motives. It was a reason for Serenity to feel grateful to him. ¡°That¡®s my brother¨Cinw¡®s name. What¡®s wrong? Do you know him?¡± Zachary could guess the direction of the conversation at that point. Without interrupting their phone conversation, Zachary slipped away to his bedroom and called Josh. Once Josh picked up the call, he asked in a husky voice, ¡°Josh, did you get anything on the investigation into Hank¡®s affair?¡± ¡°Got it. I was thinking of bringing the report with the photographs to you tomorrow. Hank has all the intentions of cheating on Liberty, but he and his lover haven¡®t gotten physical yet. It¡®s more like they¡®re dating without having sex. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°Apart from a few pieces of jewelry, Hank didn¡®t give his lover a house o a car. My people took photographs of them together. There are a few intimatepictures like kissing and hugging, but nothing more than that. ¡± Josh believed the secretary, Jessica, was quite a flirt and had a way with men. She was not in a hurry to give herself to Hank, leading him n by ying hard to get. That was the weakness of human nature. People wanted what they could not get. ¡°Hank is very frugal with his wife but generous to his lover named Jessica Yates. He often takes her to the Wilt spoon Hotel for dinner. It makes my job easy to look into their expenses at the Wilt spoon Hotel. ¡± The Wilt spoon Hotel belonged to York Corporation and was managed by Kevin, who always kept a friendly front. Kevin had met with Hank before. ¡°Why did you call me sote into the night to ask about this? What? Did your sister¨Cinw find out about her husband cheating?¡± ¡°Not yet, but someone swooped in ahead of me to take the credit. ¡± Josh replied , ¡°¡­ Who would ever do that? Tell me, Zachary. I¡®ll teach the person a lesson for you so that they know the consequences of stepping on your toes. ¡± He wanted in on the gossip. ¡°Let me guess. Was it your love rival?¡± Josh was not dumb. In fact, he was quick to catch on. Chapter 280 Chapter 280 Chapter 280 ¨C Josh was able to figure it was Shawn mainly because thetter attended the business event at the hotel tonight. Shawn might only hold a small position at Lowe Enterprise, but he was the predetermined sessor of thepany. His title as the heir of the Lowes would put him like a duck to water at the center of ttery and snow jobs at social events. Zachary¡®s silence was all the answer Josh needed. ¡°How about I deliver the file to you now? Are you staying at Brynfield?¡± Josh knew that his best friend kept the marriage under wraps and bought a furnished ce at Bryn field to put Serenity¡®s character to the test. ¡°No need for that. Just give it to me tomorrow. It¡®ste. You should rest. I¡®m going to wash up and head to bed. ¡± Although Josh had front¨Crow seat to the progress of Zachary and Serenity¡®s rtionship, Zachary was not in the mood to go into detail with Josh about it. Zachary quickly hung up the phone. Josh murmured under his breath, ¡°Can you sleep well tonight? Your love rival hogged the credit. ¡± Only Zachary knew if he had a good night¡®s sleep. Serenity was not too surprised following Shawn¡®s disclosure. All she felt was rage. ¡°Thank you for letting me know, Shawn. ¡± Instead of blowing up, Serenity thanked Shawn and asked, ¡°Do you have pictures of them?¡± She needed concrete proof that Shawn had indeed seen the cheating b*stard, Hank ¡°I didn¡®t take pictures with them. I thought his name was familiar but couldn¡®t put my finger on it. It only dawned on me that it might be your brother¨Cinw¡®s name when I got home. That¡®s why I called you. Serenity, tell your sister to quickly collect the evidence and be on the lookout in case he tries to shift the assets. ¡± ¡°Sure, I will. Thanks again. ¡± Shawn said with a smile, ¡°No need to thank me. I¡®m only the messenger, Serenity. ¡°I shouldn¡®t take you away from your rest. Goodnight, Serenity. I¡®m going to drop by the shop to deliver Jasmine¡®s favorite breakfast tomorrow morning. Come and enjoy breakfast together. ¡± Shawn often delivered food to his cousin, but he had other things in mind. The truth was that he wanted to deliver food to Serenity. However, Shawn could note clean about his true intentions. ¡°It¡®s fine. Just bring breakfast for Jasmine. I¡®m going to have breakfast with my husband before getting to work. ¡± Zachary mentioned that Shawn liked her. Serenity had no idea whether Zachary was right about that. Nevertheless, it was time she kept a distance from Shawn. He was a grown man, gone was the child who rolled on the floor crying whenever the girls left him out in games. She specifically brought Zachary into the conversation. It was to remind Shawn that she was married. The smile on Shawn¡®s face froze at the mention of her husband. It took a while before he found his voice. ¡°Goodnight, Serenity. ¡± He ended the call. After putting his phone on his bedside table, Shawny in bed and stared at the ceiling. The thought that Serenity, who he had a crush on since forever, married someone else made his heart sink to the pit of his stomach. He knew that Serenity only got hitched in a haste to find a ce to move in so that her sister could feel at ease. Shawn was also aware that Serenity never found him as husband material because he was younger than her by three years. Serenity only saw him as a younger brother. Why did he have to be three years younger than Serenity? His mother should have given birth to him sooner. Serenity would not regard him as a younger brother if he was at least Serenity¡¯s age. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lowe must wonder why it was her fault if she could read Shawn¡¯s thoughts. Chapter 281 Chapter 281 Chapter 281 While feasting on her pasta, Serenity sent a text message to her sister, asking if thetter was asleep. Instead of writing back, Liberty immediately rang Serenity. Since typing took a lot of time, Liberty would rathermunicate directly on the phone. ¡°Seren, I¡®m awake. Did you just return home?¡± Liberty had a clear idea of her sister¡®s routine. Back when Serenity was living in Liberty¡®s ce, Serenity was thest to sleep but the first to wake up. Liberty was aware that to appease her husband, Serenity would get up first thing in the morning to prepare breakfast and manage some house chores. Her sister had done so much for the family, and yet Hank kicked up a fuss about Serenity mooching off him. Serenity had, in fact, chipped in on the household expenses¡­ Judging by his cold and empty side of the bed, it did not matter to Liberty anymore. All she cared about was her sister. ¡°Yeah. I¡®m having supper. Liberty, Shawn said he ran into my brother inw with a beautifuldy at a business event at Wiltspoon Hotel. Shawn mentioned he was very nice to the woman. They looked like a couple in love. ¡°Shawn has never seen my brother-inw, but he had heard of his name. Shawn told me once he remembered where he heard the name before. Since Shawn said the man is a manager of Waltham Electronics, I think it was likely Hank. Be careful and keep an eye on Hank. Don¡®t let him transfer all the assets away. Most importantly, protect yourself. ¡± There were too many murder cases of spouses nowadays. Serenity¡®s priority was to warn her sister to keep herself safe. There was no point in keeping the man around if he was unfaithful. However, it would not be worth losing her life over a cheating b*stard. While her ears took in everything her sister said, Liberty could not find her voice. Liberty had prepared herself for this day as she had guessed that Hank might be having an affair. He was a charming man in his early thirties with a sessful career. There must be a lot of young women in hispany. For Hank to be surrounded by young and beautiful women in the office and toe home to Liberty, who still had her postpartum body, Hank would pick the women in his office over her any day. It was only normal for men. Liberty had braced herself to separate from Hank. However, her sister¡®s ount of Hank¡®s possible affair was a p in Liberty¡®s face, sweeping her away in a whirlwind of disappointment and despair. Tears rolled down her cheeks before she could say anything. She and Hank were college sweethearts, and they had kept the rtionship strong after graduation. They had known each other for twelve years, dated for seven years, and married for three years. She thought this was her happy¨Cever¨Cafter, but the cruel reality stripped away her happy ending. N?velDrama.Org ? content. After her parents were taken away by an untimely death, Liberty struggled through life together with her sister. Hank was caring for her and her sister back then, alwaysforting, encouraging, and helping her in her time of need. He gave Liberty all the attention when their rtionship was official. The honeymoon phase aside, Hank had been nothing but nice to her at the start of their marriage. Hank and Liberty were both to be med for Hank falling out of love. After the birth of their son, Liberty put all her attention on the child and went heavy on nutritious food to nurse her son. She was the type to gain weight easily if she did not watch what she was eating. Liberty started to add pounds to her waistline during the nursing period. In addition, she believed Hank when he said he would take care of her and quit her job. Without a source of ie, Liberty skimped and refused to spend money on herself. She was a different person from the woman she was before marriage. She knew that a devoted man would always remain faithful to his wife regardless of her weight change. However, most men could not stand their wives when women let themselves go and were dependent on them for money. Ultimately, the feelings Hank had for Liberty did not run deep. ¡°Are you alright, Liberty?¡± Chapter 282 Chapter 282 Chapter 282 Wiping away her tears, Liberty got a grip on herself and tried to sound normal. ¡°I figured, but I didn¡®t expect it to happen so soon. ¡± Despite having an affair, Hank kept it from Liberty and had not brought up a divorce. If her guess was right, it was because of Sonny. Sonny was young and could not deal with separation anxiety. Liberty¡®s parents¨Cinw were helping Chelsea to look after her kids and cook while Hank only had eyes for his family. Even Hank put his sister as his priority over her. He did not think there was anything wrong with his parents assisting only his sister. Once they were divorced, the Browns would certainly fight for Sonny¡®s custody. However, Hank would feel sorry to put the burden of child raising on his parents unless Sonny was already in kindergarten. Hank was probably waiting for Sonny to start attending kindergarten before asking for a divorce. The only thing he could do now was to go passive¨Caggressive on her. ¡°Liberty, you might want to keep it down since we don¡®t have any proof yet. In the meantime, we¡®ll gather all the evidence we can. Besides, I¡®m just giving you the heads¨Cup in case he tries something on you. ¡± Serenity detected the sobs behind her sister¡®s tone but did not mention it aloud. Her sisters needed time to let it all out. She could let her sister cry it out if that helped. It took three years of marriage to see the man¡¯s true colors. It was a painful lesson. However, Liberty was still young at thirty years old. There was no point sticking around since Hank hadmitted infidelity. ¡°I will, Seren. Enjoy your supper. I¡¯m alright. I¡®m looking for a job to get ready for the divorce. ¡± Liberty did not crumble when she had suddenly lost her parents and faced the cruelty of her rtives. She was able to get through life with her sister against all odds, so her husband¡®s adultery would not break her down either. L ¡°Get some rest, Liberty. Don¡®t think too much about it. It could be a case of mistaken identity. ¡± However, Serenity knew they were only fooling themselves. ¡°Sure. ¡± Liberty ended the call and tossed the phone aside. Rolling to her side, she stared at her son¡®s sleeping face and could no longer hold back her emotions from running high. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She pulled the covers over her head and bit on them as she wailed. Amid the tears, she reached out to stroke her son¡®s face. Her son would not have aplete family if the divorce were to happen. Nevertheless, Liberty was not the kind to endure a broken marriage for the sake of her son. A broken home hurt the children in it greatly. However, a broken marriage would also do great damage to the children if not ended promptly. Sonny was still young to understand what a divorce was. If Liberty were to get custody of Sonny, she would not stop Hank from visiting the child. However, knowing the Browns, Liberty was not certain she could see her son again if Hank were to acquire full custody. It would hurt Sonny the most if he was forced to be separated from his mother at a young age and experience the prolonged absence of his mother. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Liberty wiped away her tears and caressed her son¡¯s little face while vowing through clenched teeth, ¡°I will do everything in my power to get custody of you. ¡± Hank had never taken care of his son, and her parents-inw mostly only yed with Sonny. Liberty had no idea the kind of cold shoulders and harm the little man would get if her son was granted to them. Chelsea¡®s son had always bullied Sonny. The bullying would only be worse if Sonny were to live with his grandparents. Such was the treatment gotten by a child without their mother! Sonny was sound asleep, unaware that his parents¡® marriage wasing to an end. Chapter 283 Chapter 283 Chapter 283 Liberty cried for a long time and only put away the tears when Hank came home. She pretended to be asleep, but her ears were pricked up for the noise outside. Ever since the domestic abuse, the couple had slept in separate rooms. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Hank must be scared Liberty might cut him up in the middle of his sleep. The bedroom door was pushed open, but Hank did not enter. Instead, he looked in from the door. Seeing that his wife and child were asleep, he closed the door and went to the bedroom next door. With the door shut, he phoned Jessica. ¡°Mr. Brown. ¡± ¡°We¡®re not in the office. Call me Hank. ¡± 1 Hank spoke in a hushed tone so his wife could not hear him from the next room. ¡°Are you home, Hank? I was so worried about you. You drove home even though you had a lot to drink. I was worried sick. Don¡®t do that again. It¡®s dangerous to drink and drive. You¡¯ll be in trouble if the traffic catches you for a DUI. ¡± Jessica expressed her concern for Hank over the phone and made him feel loved through the sweet talk. ¡°You¡®re the boss. I won¡®t drive under the influence anymore. I¡¯ll get someone to drive instead. Get some rest, Jessica. I just want to wish you goodnight. ¡± Hank was smitten by Jessica. They had spent the whole night together before going back to their homes. Yet, Hank could not stop thinking about Jessica ¨C her beautiful face, her voluptuous figure, and her sweet voice. He missed her everything. Perhaps he had too much to drink because the mere thought of Jessica set his loins on fire. ¡°Hank, get some sleep. We have work tomorrow. Goodnight. I¡®ll miss you in my dreams. ¡± Jessica held the phone against her lips and made smooching sounds. ¡± Kisses for you. ¡± Hank said with a smile, ¡°The kiss doesn¡®t do it for me. You must make it up to me tomorrow. I want a French kiss. Jessica, I really, really want ¡­ You get it, Jessica. ¡± ¡°Goodnight, Hank. ¡± Dismissing the meaning behind his words on purpose, Jessica coquettishly said goodnight and hung up the call. Hank had the hots for Jessica, but thetter kept leading him on, refusing to take their rtionship one step further. ¡°That little flirt! ¡°But that¡®s what I like about you,¡± Hank murmured. Although the flirt turned him on a bit too much, Hank wired Jessica money in the amounts of 143 and 1,437 dors separately with a kissing emoji. Jessica epted the wired money and transferred back 1. 43 and 14. 37 dors, respectively, adding a yful text message together with the transfer. (Hank, I love you with an extra point. ) Hank felt on top of the world. The pair went mushy over text messages for half an hour before calling it quits for the night. After much thought, Hank decided to leave the guest room and return to the master bedroom. He pushed the door open and went in. Having held down her sadness, Liberty pulled herself out of the slump and let drowsiness take over. She turned over to the sound of the door opening abruptly and opened her eyes to see Hank entering the room. She asked sharply, ¡°What are you doing in here?¡± Stopping in his tracks, Hank replied curtly, ¡°This is my bedroom too. What¡®s wrong with sleeping in my room?¡± ¡°Aren¡®t you afraid I might chop you up to bits?¡± Liberty¡®s tone was filled with sarcasm. Hank ignored her. He went over and took out his shoes before climbing into bed. Hanky down next to his son. Chapter 284 Chapter 284 Chapter 284 ¡°You had a lot to drink. You reek of alcohol. Go and shower. ¡± Disgusted by the stench, Liberty kicked Hank. Now that she had found out that he was cheating on her, Liberty was going to take her sister¡®s advice and refrain from spooking him. She would carry on with life like nothing ever happened while collecting evidence of his infidelity behind the scenes, so he could not talk his way out of it. As for whether Hank would do something to her, Liberty believed that he was not that cruel. Besides, the police could easily crack a murder case with today¡®s technology. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. His misdeed would not go undetected if he every his hands on her. He would not throw away his future in exchange for her life. Amid all his swearing, Hank still went to take a shower. Aftering out of the bathroom, Hanky down next to his son again, but in less than two minutes, he sat up and crawled near his son¡®s feet to slither his hand onto Liberty¡®s thigh. He made his intention abundantly clear. Although Hank was turned off by Liberty¡®s body, Jessica had awakened the beast within him. He could only relieve himself with Liberty since they were a couple in the eyes of thew. In the past, Liberty would y along whenever his hand ran up her thigh. Tonight, he had only touched Liberty¡®s thigh when thetter gave him her foot. Caught off guard, Hank was kicked off the bed and fell onto his bottom. Hank was furious. He got onto his feet and pointed at Liberty, about to blow up at Liberty when the woman slid off the bed while picking up her slipper in passing. With Liberty charging at him and ready to pick a fight, Hank was brought back to when he ran several blocks with the knife wielding woman on his tail. Suddenly, he could not find the words to yell at her. ¡°Get lost!¡± Liberty threw her slipper at him and hissed in a low voice, ¡°Don¡®t you dare wake my son up. ¡± Hank held a finger up to her face as redness flushed his face. Still, he could not get a word out. In the end, he stormed out in bitter resentment. Liberty went to close and locked the bedroom door. She might get intimate with Hank if the phone call with her sister did not happen an hour ago. They were a married couple after all. Now that Liberty knew Hank did the ultimate betrayal, regardless of whether it was an emotional or physical affair, she could no longer ept him as he made her sick. Now that he was at a safe distance away from Liberty, he ran his mouth, ¡°Look at your fat and ugly self. I can only take you in the dark. I wouldn¡®t even touch you if the light was turned on. I was doing you a favor! Do you think you¡®re still the beautiful girl you were long ago? ¡°Fine, have it your way. I¡®m never touching you again!¡± Hank chose to be passive¨Caggressive, so Liberty would suffer the consequences of making him mad. He believed Liberty was only thirty years old to be able to suppress her own urges. After tearing into Liberty, Hank went to the guest room and took another shower. It was a cold shower this time. He then plopped onto the bed and fell asleep. By the time he woke up the next morning, Liberty and her son were no longer home. He brushed his teeth and freshened up before heading to the kitchen out of habit. Hank approached the stove and took off the lids of each pot but found nothing inside. ¡°I might as well hire a housekeeper than marry a wife. What¡®s the point of having a wife? She can¡®t even make breakfast. I go to work every day and bring home the bacon while she¡®s at home, just taking care of a child. Can¡®t she cook up a quick breakfast for me? What¡®s the use of having her around?¡± Rubbing his belly, Hank was starving. He opened the fridge to find nothing much in there. Hank initially wanted to make himself a bowl of pasta but quickly gave up on that thought. It was because Hank was no use in the kitchen. His parents and sister cooked for him before he got married while Liberty and Serenity took over the cooking duty after marriage. Hank merely sat there and enjoyed the food. He came out of the kitchen and looked at the clock on the wall. It was only seven o¡®clock in the morning. Where could Liberty and his son be at this hour? Were they at the market getting groceries? Chapter 285 Chapter 285 Chapter 285 Liberty was not at the market getting groceries. She had been looking for a job during the day and making a detour to the market while on her way home. The produce at the market tended to be cheaper at night, so she could save a bit of money this way. Although Liberty had not gotten a job and could not rely on her husband, she had not maxed out her resources. It was a good thing Liberty took her sister¡®s advice to save up some money back then. Her sister was against Liberty quitting her job and getting ready for pregnancy after getting married. Her sister said that women should have their own ie instead of relyingpletely on men no matter before or after marriage. All was good if the husband was good to the wife. Once the husband fell out of love and started cheating, the wife, who was without a job or an ie, would be in an unfavorable position and be sunk into oblivion. Liberty had been foolish. She trusted her rtionship with Hank was solid and that Hank would never betray her. He told her to fork out the money to renovate their home. Liberty believed she should deck out their love nest. Since she was also part of the home, she promised Hank to spend hundreds of thousands in her savings to renovate the house. Hank told her to quit her job and prepare herself for pregnancy. He would be supporting her financially. She believed his sweet nothings and handed in her resignation despite her boss¡®s retention offers. She went from working in the office to building her home. What did she get in the end? Hurt. LE Liberty pushed her son in the stroller as she walked to her sister¡¯s bookshop She did not go to Brynfield for fear she might be a bother to her brother ¨Cinw so early in the morning. While strolling, she could not stop the tears from rolling down her cheeks as she reminisced about the old times. Liberty thought she would not be sad since she had braced herself for the divorce. Still, she overestimated herself. She was sad, terribly sad. She would be lying to say she had no more feelings for him. Twelve years of knowing him could not be wiped away just like that. Sitting in the stroller, Sonny was still asleep. Liberty carried him out and put him in the stroller so the little man could continue his sleep. Despite the transfer, the little guy had no problems staying in slumbend Liberty wheeled her sleeping son and took strides ahead like a puppet. Meanwhile, Serenity made breakfast and packed them in lunch boxes that she had just cleaned. She left some food out for Zachary but nothing for herself. Carrying the two lunch boxes, she hurried out of the kitchen. She ran into Zachary on her way out. ¡°Good morning, Mr. York. ¡± Serenity wished him a good morning. ¡°Breakfast is ready in the kitchen. You can get it from there. I made sandwiches. ¡± Zachary stared at the lunch boxes in her hands and asked, ¡°Haven¡®t you eaten?¡± ¡°Not yet. I¡¯m going to my sister¡¯s ce. Sonny loves sandwiches. I¡¯m bringing him some. ¡± Serenity did not hide her brother¨Cinw¡®s infidelity from her sister. She told her sisterst night, and now she was worried that Liberty would lose her appetite over the matter. That was why Serenity packed sandwiches. At least her sister and nephew would not go hungry. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Since she filled the containers up, it would be enough for Serenity and her sister to share and still fill their stomachis. The sisters only had each other over the years. Although Liberty had prepared herself for a divorce, they dated for seven years and married for three. That was a ten¨Cyear rtionship down the drain. It would be hard on Liberty when it came down to it. Zachary knew the reason Serenity was in a rush to get to his sister¨Cinw¡®s ce. ¡°I¡®ll go with you. ¡± ¡°It¡®s fine. You haven¡®t had breakfast, and you need to get to workter. I¡®m off, Mr. York. Don¡®t forget about breakfast. Wash up when you¡®re done. ¡± Serenity urged her man before leaving in a haste with the lunch boxes. Chapter 286 Chapter 286 Chapter 286 Serenity had just gotten downstairs when she heard her man¡®s cries. The bodyguards, who were pretending to be strolling nearby, swiftly turned their backs against Serenity as if they did not see her when the missus emerged downstairs. They carried on with their leisure walks. L . It did not take long before Mr. Zachary was calling out to the missus. Stopping in her tracks, Serenity turned around and looked at Zachary. With the car keys in hand, Zachary said to Serenity, ¡°I¡®lle along. ¡± His sister¨Cinw bravely fought back when Hank abused her. Liberty was a spitfire. She was not the type to back down and endure the suffering. LL How could Liberty tolerate her husband¡®s cheating? The couple might engage in another physical altercation. Zachary knew that Hank could not hurt Serenity since his wife practiced self¨Cdefense. Nevertheless, she needed a man by her side as Hank or the Browns would not think twice before acting cocky. He was her husband and her supporter. Zachary hoped he would have a chance to prove himself. He reached out to take the lunchboxes from Serenity and grabbed her hand with his free hand to lead her to his car. ¡°I¡®ll drive you to the shopter too. ¡± Serenity no longer refused him from tagging along. She decided to cook him breakfast at her sister¡¯s ceter, so Zachary would not go to work hungry. ¡°I overheard your phone conversation with your sisterst night. ¡± Zachary was not going to say that he had Josh investigating proof of Hank¡®s infidelity earlier on. He dared not bring up that he bumped into Hank and his lover at the hotel as the couple was giving each other the silent treatment at the time. Besides, Zachary did not see Hank with his own eyes. His bodyguard told him about it. Serenity fell silent for a while before saying, ¡°Shawn went to a business party at Wiltspoon Hotelst night and saw my brother¨Cinw getting cozy with a young and beautiful woman there. The woman must be his lover. Hank¡­ That b*stard is having an affair! ¡°I couldn¡®t keep it from my sister, so I told her. N?velDrama.Org ? content. It¡®s not something I should be quiet about. Hank and his family are already mistreating my sister, and it¡®s only getting worse. My sister¡®s heartbroken. Why should I lie to my sister when he¡®s now cheating on her?¡± Keeping the affair a secret would do the greatest harm to her sister. Serenity would rather her sister get this over with sooner thanter. She preferred her sister to feel the pain now than her sister spending the rest of her life in forbearance. There were many fishes in the sea. Her sister was not without a future if Hank was not in the picture. Even if her sister had no intentions to remarry after the divorce, she would not have to face her inws¡® criticisms and insults anymore. Liberty would be free from her husband¡®s passive¨Caggressive attacks. She would regain her freedom. Of course, it was Serenity¡®s wish that her sister could find her two feet and confidence to be independent once she was separated from Hank. It would be better if she could find new happiness though. With his eyes on the road, Zachary listened to her vent and replied,¡± You did the right thing. ¡± The worry reflected in Serenity¡¯s tone must be the doubt that she might have made a mistake. She did not want her sister to resent her for that. Having acquired Zachary¡®s moral support, Serenity felt assured with her decision. ¡°But you should ask what your sister ns to doter. Is she going to forgive Hank if he cut ties with his mistress? Does she still want the marriage to work?¡± Zachary was new to the subject of marriage, but he had heard stories of wives catching their husbands cheating on them. The men would beg for forgiveness in tears, promising they would never see the mistresses again, and some wives were willing to give these men a second chance. He reminded Serenity that it was best to get Liberty¡®s opinion on the matter. One option was to divorce, but Liberty had to figure a way to save her marriage if she was not ready to Chapter 287 Chapter 287 Chapter 287 Serenity was about to say that her sister would never forgive infidelity but hummed a response on second thought. The couple did not exchange another word during the journey. Zachary did not do well at small talks while Serenity was preupied with her sister¡®s marriage to engage in conversation. It was pin¨Cdrop silence in the car. Zachary did not even put the music on. Tilting her head, Serenity looked at the scenery outside the window. She waited until they were reaching Bright Boulevard before giving her sister a call. Serenity was relieved that her sister picked up the call. ¡°Liberty, are you and Sonny up? I made quite a lot of sandwiches, so I brought you and Sonny some. ¡± Liberty stopped walking and stared at her son in the stroller. She said, ¡° Sonny isn¡®t awake yet. Seren, I¡®m not at home. I took Sonny out for a stroll and somehow ended up near your bookshop. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. I¡®ll just head to your shop instead of going home. ¡± ¡°Oh, I see. Where are you now? Can you drop me a pin? We¡®ll take you to the shop. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Liberty was tired from the long walk. Since she was on the heavy side, the weight on her feet only exhausted her more as the stroll went on. She sent her location to her sister. Having received her sister¡®s location, Serenity told Zachary, ¡°My sister isn¡®t at home, Mr. York. She¡®s on the way to my shop. Can you go here? We can pick her and Sonny up then head to the shop. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary took a look at the location on Serenity¡®s phone before making a U¨Cturn and rerouting. Liberty believed she had walked a great distance, so it would not take long before Zachary arrived at where she was. It was a ten-minute car ride to her location. Holding the stroller, Liberty waited by the road. ¡°Liberty. ¡± With the caring to a stop, Serenity got out of the car and approached her sister. ¡°Ant Swer. ¡± Sonny was looking a little drowsy as he just woke up from his sleep, but the sight of his aunt brightened him up. He extended his arms, asking for Serenity to hold him. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Serenity carried her nephew and said to her sister, ¡°Get into the car, Liberty. ¡± Zachary got out of the car and helped fold the stroller before loading it in the car. He waited until the sisters entered the car before taking his seat as the driver and starting the engine. The sisters sat in the backseat. ¡°Are you hungry, Sonny?¡± Serenity was not in a hurry to ask about her sister¡®s ns. Sonny might only be two years old, but he could catch a few words from the adults¡® conversation. Serenity did not want her nephew to find out about Hank¡®s affair. No matter what, Hank was Sonny¡¯s father. Regardless of the father¡®s wrongdoings, it was inappropriate to speak ill about the father in front of a child. ¡°Hungry. ¡± Sonny rubbed his belly. ¡°I brought form. ¡± Liberty added, ¡°It¡®s not easy to feed him milk in the car. I¡®ll wait until we¡®re at the shop to give him his bottle. ¡± ¡°Do you want to have milk or a sandwich?¡± Serenity asked her little nephew. ¡°I want sandwichy. ¡± With a smile, Serenity kissed her nephew on the cheek and replied,¡± Okay. I¡®ll give you a sandwich when we¡®re at my shop. It¡®s your favorite cheese sandwich. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± As Sonny had only woken up, he could endure an empty stomach for a little longer. While pressing Sonny¡®s head against her chest, Serenity¡®s heart went out to him. Chapter 288 Chapter 288 Chapter 288 What should Liberty do if she failed to get custody of Sonny following the divorce? The Browns were a nasty piece of work, in the same ss as Serenity¡¯s rtives. Serenity dared not imagine Sonny¡¯s life if he were to stay with the Brown family. The Hunt sisters had been caring for Sonny since the day he was born. Serenity loved her nephew like her own. Her heart sank at the thought that the custody of her nephew would be given to the Browns. ¡°Liberty, if we do get there, we must fight for Sonny¡¯s custody. Sonny will suffer and be bullied in their hands,¡± Serenity said softly. Biting her lip, Liberty replied in a hushed voice, ¡°I¡¯ll do everything I can to secure full custody. ¡± While behind the wheel, Zachary chimed in. ¡°You can go on with the divorce proceedings and fight for custody after you find a job. Otherwise, it¡¯ll be easy to lose the custody battle. ¡± Although Liberty was Sonny¡¯s primary carer and the child was closer to his mother than his father, Liberty had no ie, which was detrimental to winning the custody battle unless Hank was willing to forfeit his parental rights. ¡°I¡¯ll work hard to find a job. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. I¡¯ll even take on an administrative job for Sonny¡¯s sake. ¡± Liberty could not get a job as the director of finance, nor was she able to find work in other roles. Perhaps people did not take her weight kindly as it was bad for her image. She wanted to take her time at finding a job, but now that Hank was cheating on her, Liberty could no longer be fussy. Her only wish was to find a job. Zachary hummed an acknowledgment. Soon, they arrived at the shop. Zachary did not enter the shop. ¡°This is for you, Mr. York. ¡± Serenity gave one of the lunch boxes to Zachary and said, ¡°You didn¡¯t have breakfast. It¡¯ll be bad for your tummy if you starve yourself. I¡¯ll make a fresh batch at the shop. ¡± Zachary looked into her eyes for a minute before taking the lunch box from her. ¡°Serenity, I have a friend who¡¯s pretty good at obtaining vital information. I¡¯ve asked him to gather clues and collect evidence of Hank¡¯s infidelity. Have a good talk with your sister. Don¡¯t worry too much about it. I will help wherever I can. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. York. ¡± He was always there to pick up the pieces whenever the sisters were in trouble. He was also capable of straightening out any issues with ease no matter if the problem was big or small. After a brief silence, Zachary responded, ¡°No need to thank me. We¡¯re still married. ¡± Serenity stared at him for a while. He was a great man. Although he was petty at times and loved to question her motives, he was a good man most of the time. ¡°Be safe on the road. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± As the couple said their goodbyes, Zachary drove off. Once he spotted his personal ride and convoy at an intersection, Zachary steered his car there and pulled up nearby. He swiftly got into his Rolls Royce while a bodyguard took over the national MPV and drove behind the fleet of cars onward to York Corporation. It was a good thing Elisa was not waiting in front of the office building today. It was not that Elisa did not wait for Zachary. She was at the wrong location. Elisa was waiting for Zachary along the road to Regent Residences. Despite hanging around for the whole morning, she did not catch Zachary¡¯s Rolls Royce passing by. Knowing that Zachary owned a lot of properties, Elisa got the idea that Zachary did not spend the night at Regent Residencesst night since he did not go past. She wondered where he wasst night. It seemed her n would not work anymore. What should she do now? With the intention to seek help, Elisa went to Wiltspoon School to look for Serenity. She even bought some desserts from a shop for Serenity. Meanwhile, Serenity had made herself a pasta dish for breakfast. The food was ready. She carried the te of pasta out of the kitchte. ¡°Liberty, Jasmine, do you want any? There¡¯s more in the pot. ¡± Chapter 289 Chapter 289 Chapter 289 ¡°Sonny didn¡®t finish the sandwiches, so I ate his leftovers. ¡± Liberty did not have much of an appetite. She ate after Sonny and finished the sandwiches in the lunch box. Neither hungry nor full, Liberty simply did not feel like eating. Jasmine already had her breakfast. Serenity helped herself to the te of pasta. She slurped down her pasta and finished the whole te in minutes. While she cleared away her dirty dishes and cleaned them in the kitchen, Jasmine came in and whispered, ¡°Seren, did you notice your sister¡®s swollen eyes? Has she been crying?¡± Serenity quietly washed the dishes. A whileter, she spoke softly, ¡°Shawn was at a business dinnerst night and saw my brother¨Cinw together with another woman. They were rather intimate at the event. It would be hard to believe that there¡®s nothing going on between them. Shawn only remembered who he was when he got homest night and told me about it. I filled my sister in on the whole thing. ¡± ¡°Huh?¡± Jasmine cried. ¡°Your brother¨Cinw is cheating on her! He proposed going halves and abused Liberty. Turns out, he¡®s having an affair!¡± Sure enough, there were signs when men did not love their women anymore. ¡°That revolting cheating b*stard!¡± Without a word, Serenity cleaned the dishes and walked out of the kitchen to find Liberty staring into nk space as she held Sonny in her arMs. Feeling a lump in her throat, Serenity felt sorry for her sister. She felt so bad that she wanted to cry. ¡°Seren. ¡± Jasmine patted her shoulder and said softly, ¡°Now is not the time to be sad. ¡± Serenity bit her lips as she fought back tears. She then made her way toward Sonny. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Liberty did not hear her. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Serenity called out again. Snapping out of her thoughts, Liberty turned her face away and swiftly wiped her tears. She answered her sister as if nothing happened. ¡°Liberty, let Jasmine look after Sonny. ¡± Taking the cue, Jasmine went ahead and carried Sonny while coaxing him, ¡°Sonny, should I take you to get a toy?¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Sonny immediately responded with joy at the suggestion of getting a new toy. Holding Sonny in her arms, Jasmine chatted with the little man as she walked out of the bookshop. Once they were gone, Serenity asked her sister with concern, ¡°What do you n on doing, Liberty?¡± i ¡°I intend to take your advice and pretend like I don¡®t know anything instead of questioning him. I¡®m going to gather evidence of his affair and look for a job as soon as possible. I¡®ll put my card on the table when I get a steady job. ¡± Liberty was furious and bitter. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. However, she had to suck it up to gain custody of her son. ¡°Are you going to forgive Hank if he refuses to divorce, says he¡®s sorry, that he¡®ll change, and cut ties with his other woman?¡± Chapter Without a second thought, Liberty blurted coldly, ¡°No! A leopard won¡®t change its spots! Once a cheater, always a cheater. He is already ashamed of me and has no more feelings for me. It¡®s pointless for me to keep him around. ¡± ¡°No matter the decision you make, I will always be on your side and support you, Liberty. ¡± Chapter 290 Chapter 290 Chapter 290 ¡°Seren, starting tomorrow, you can just pick Sonny up while I¡®m going to jog to your shop. I want to lose weight!¡± Liberty was not getting fit to save her marriage. It was to present herself in a better light and find a better job in the future. ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity had told her sister to keep up with the exercise before the weight became out of control. ¡°Seren. ¡± Liberty suddenly put her arms around her sister and cried. In fact, she bawled out loud. She was suffering inside. ! All the years she devoted to the rtionship hade to this. Liberty would be lying to say it was not eating her up inside. She could only put on a brave face so her son did not see her cry. Holding her sister tightly, Serenity could not stop the tears in her eyes too. A It was like fifteen years ago when she first heard her parents¡® passing in an ident. Liberty went to fetch her from school to bring her home. Serenity had only walked out of the school gate when her sister held her and burst into tears. Serenity had no idea what was going on then. Her sister said that their parents were no more. Serenity¡®s mind went ck, and then the world started spinning. By the time she came to, Serenity was staring at her sister¡®s tearful face. She slid her hand across her face only to find that she was in tears just like her sister. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Serenity embraced her sister and choked in between sobs. ¡°Let it out, Liberty. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. You¡®ll feel better after letting it all out. ¡± It was not easy for the sisters to get where they were today. They thought they could finally live a stable life, but God had other ns for Liberty. ¡°How can he do that to me? We¡®ve known each other for twelve years and in love for ten. He used to be so good to me. He had been there during our darkest moments, encouraging me and supporting me. He told me that he would always have my back. ¡°He has already forgotten about his vows just three years into the marriage. Is it my fault because I didn¡®t take care of myself, forsake myself after giving birth, and have no common ground to talk about after quitting my job?¡± ¡°It¡®s not your fault, Liberty. Don¡®t put all the me on yourself. It¡®s not your fault. ¡± Serenity consoled her sister, ¡°It¡®s his fault. Now that he has money, he¡®s started looking for other women. That¡®s what many men would do. Men go astray when they have money in their pockets. It¡®s not your fault, Liberty. If you insist that you¡®re to me, the only wrong you¡®vemitted is falling in love with him and trusting his bullsh*t. ¡± ¡°I want to pretend that I don¡®t care, but I feel hurt. Seren, he might have be a two¨Ctiming b*stard, but I can¡®t act like nothing ever happened. I¡®m not as strong as you think. ¡± ¡°I understand, Liberty. You¡®ve known him for twelve years and been in a rtionship with him for ten years. How can you just let go?¡± People have a strong attachment with a dog after rearing it for ten years, much less lovers and married couples. Liberty bawled for a while longer and released all the pain within before feeling a little better. Seeing that Liberty¡®s tears had stopped flowing, Serenity grabbed a tissue to wipe her sister¡¯s face. ¡°I¡¯m going to ssh my face before Sonny catches me cryingter. ¡± Liberty went into the loo and washed her face beforeing out. By the time she took a seat behind the cash register, she had gotten a grip on herself. Liberty said, ¡°Seren, if you can learn anything from me, you should take care of yourself and treat yourself. Don¡®t end up like me, pumping food into my body and bing a fat cow for my child. My husband can¡®t even stand me. ¡± ¡°Liberty, a cheater will still cheat, even if you watch your figure. Otherwise, Hank would embrace whatever changes to your body. If his feelings for you were true, he would honor his marital vows despite the changes to your figure and looks. ¡± At the end of the day, Hank was not that into Liberty. 11 Not many women whom men cheated with were better looking and had better figures than their wives. L It was only a matter of time before Hank had an affair anyway, which only happened so quickly because her sister had not been keeping fit. ¡°Zachary said that he has a friend who¡®s an expert at gathering intel. He¡®ll ask the friend to collect proof of Hank¡®s infidelity. ¡± Chapter 291 Chapter 291 Chapter 291 Liberty uttered gratefully, ¡°Seren, Zachary is a good man. You¡®re right about him. He¡®s always by your side whenever it gets tough for us. He spared no resources and effort to help us. Be a good wife to him. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I will, Liberty. ¡± Her sister would be upset if Serenity were to tell her that her marriage with Zachary was only for six months. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. They were only a married couple by name. Serenity should keep it from her sister for now. ¡°Don¡®t lose faith in Zachary because of my marriage. Although Zachary doesn¡®t talk much, he prefers action over words. ¡± ¡°I won¡®t. ¡± Liberty was worried that her marriage might have a bad influence on her sister¡®s mindset and marriage. The way Liberty saw it, Zachary was a great man. He was good to her sister. Well, no one would know whether it would change in the future. Hank was good to her in the past too. Zachary got to the office and was about to get the secretary to summon Josh over when Josh knocked and entered the room. ¡°Boss, this is the proof you want. ¡± Josh drew close and ced arge envelope in front of Zachary. Taking a seat, Josh said, ¡°It¡®s all in there. Hank¡¯s lover is his secretary, Jessica Yates. ¡± Zachary took the envelope and pulled out the evidence inside. As Jessica left Hank hanging, the pair had not spent the night in a hotel yet. There were only photographs of them shopping, having dinners, and making out. FIL Jessica¡®s personal data and proof of Hank¡®s spending on her were also attached. The Buchams¡® informationwork sure spread far and wide. There was photographic evidence of the gifts, price tags, and time stamps of the purchases Hank bought for Jessica. After reading the file, Zachary scowled and replied, ¡°Hank gave his wife three thousand bucks a month for living expenses, and that was before proposing going halves. He¡®s now only forking out a thousand and five hundred dors to pay for the cost of living. ¡°But the cheapest pair of earrings he bought for Jessica was a few thousand bucks. He only takes Jessica to fine dining too. ¡± Zachary¡®s mind harked back to the day of his marriage to Serenity. Serenity had asked whether they should pay their own share of living expenses. He declined, saying that he would provide for her financially since they were married. Hank must have asked to go Dutch with Liberty during that time. Josh responded, ¡°Since Hank is no longer faithful, he won¡¯t spend money on your sister-inw. He¡®ll do whatever his lover wants to please her. ¡± This was a simrity among many cheating men. They were stingy with their wives but generous toward their lovers. That was why many women should treat themselves after marriage. There was no point in saving money for their husbands as their husbands would spend the money on someone else. L 111. A wife would scrimp and save for their families, knowing that it was her husband¡®s hard¨Cearned cash. Yet, she would be in the dark about her husband splurging on his mistress. With that in mind, Zachary pulled a long face and stopped talking Josh got up to pour himself a ss of water. After downing half a ss, he asked his best friend, ¡°What does your sister¨Cin w intend to do? Just let me know if you need help. For Serenity¡®s sake, I won¡®t let her be on the losing end. IL ¡°Why don¡®t youe clean about your identity? It¡®ll be easier to get things done. ¡± Zachary fell silent before replying, ¡°I have a six¨Cmonth agreement with her. ¡± Ultimately, Zachary was not that into Serenity. It had been less than two months since they got married. He would be lying if he said he was madly in love with Serenity. ¡°Serenity and her sister are not the types to bite their tongues and eptpromises. My sister¨Cinw will want a divorce. All she needs now is a job. She can fight for custody of her son once she has a job and an ie. ¡± Chapter 292 Chapter 292 Chapter 292 Zachary was aware that Liberty had been job hunting for a while, but she got nothing so far. It was difficult as Liberty wanted her old job back. This was the reason she had not been able to find a job till this day. Now that she had found out Hank was cheating on her, Liberty would not be fussy with work. Zachary believed she would soon find a job. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°This is easy. You could just give her a job. ¡± ¡°Serenity had asked me whether ourpany is hiring a finance director, but even the finance department is at full workforce at the moment. Besides, it¡®s not the best idea to hire her sister unless I want to blow my cover. I didn¡®t help her with that and left Liberty to find a job herself. ¡± LE Zachary did not feel guilty for not assigning Liberty a post in hispany. He was a boss with principles who valued talent. Liberty took a three¨Cyear¨Clong career break, so she was rusty in the work operation. It was not easy to get into York Corporation, to begin with. Since Liberty was starting over now, her credentials would not make it past York Corporation. He had a rule against nepotism, giving privileges and pulling strings for undeserving applicants to join hispany. Zachary had made a lot of exceptions for Serenity in life, but he refused to extend the same to her in terms of work and give her sister a job. He would wee Liberty with open arms to York Corporation should thetter meet all of the company¡®s requirements one day. LLE Nevertheless, there was no way he was going to give Liberty a free pass. Josh kept quiet for a moment before uttering, ¡°Can¡®t she go for another job? The role of a finance director is only avable in major corporations. Those positions are usually filled immediately. ¡± ¡°She will. ¡± Zachary stuffed the evidence back into the envelope and ced it in his drawer. He nned to deliver the file to Serenity in the afternoon. ¡°Have you kissed and made up with your wife?¡± Nosy and concerned, Josh asked. Zachary looked at him without saying a word. He had no idea if there was an end to the argument, but at least they were talking. He was staying at Brynfield now, but he had not added Serenity¡®s contact. Maybe she was still angry. Zachary got to figure out a way for her to get over the argument. She might appear as if she did not care, but he could sense the change in her attitude toward her. She kept her distance from him. It meant that she was still mad about it. What did Serenity like? She loved to eat. Maybe he should deliver her a bag of her favorite snacks. Oh, that was right. Serenity mentioned that the house was too big for just the two of them. It was too quiet at home. She had asked if she could get dogs and cats as pets, but he shot her request down. He had pets. Nevertheless, Zachary did not have to take care of them. There was someone looking after his dogs and cats. All he had to do was say the word and someone would deliver the pet to him to y with. He had no maids or part¨Ctime housekeepers at Brynfield as he was living undercover there. Serenity and Zachary would have to tend to the pets themselves if they were to take on pet ownership. Serenity could take care of the pets since she was the one who wanted them. Zachary should just fulfill her wish. With that in mind, Zachary decided to ask Sam to get an adorable dog and two cats. Chapter 293 Chapter 293 Chapter 293 ¡°What¡®s on your mind?¡± Josh nosily asked Zachary. Snapping out of his thoughts, Zachary replied faintly, ¡°Not you, for sure. ¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°I¡®d have to quit if you¡®re thinking about me. I want to get married and have children. ¡± Zachary red at him. ¡°I should get back to work. You¡®ve been overly efficient at worktely. I¡®m tired trying to keep up with you. ¡± Josh finished his ss of water and got up. ¡°I¡®m d that¡®s finally over. ¡± The employees had had it rough at work because Zachary was jealous, thinking something was going on between Serenity and Shawn. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. It would only be worse for them if the couple had an even bigger argument one day. With that in mind, Josh prayed that the couple would always remain lovey¨Cdovey. Well, they might not be in love now, but it was only a matter of time. Zachary had developed feelings for Serenity, but he was stubborn and refused to admit to it. As his feelings for her grew deeper, he wouldy bare his heart to Serenity without anyone pointing it out to him. As for the six¨Cmonth agreement¡­ Hehe. Josh shall wait for the day his best¨Cfriend¨Ccum¨Cboss rip the contract apart. With Josh gone, Zachary immediately phoned Sam to get a dog and two cats to have them delivered to Brynfield. Zachary was going to send Jim there to receive the animals. Jim would bring the pets over once Zachary got off work so thetter could then surprise his wife with the adorable pets. No matter what, he must get his wife¡®s number back on his phone. Leaving her son to her sister at the shop, Liberty set off to look for a job. Today, she was going to ept whatever job she was offered. ¡°Liberty, take my e¨Cbike. You won¡®t have to walk a lot. ¡± Grabbing her car keys, Jasmine went after Liberty. She wanted Liberty to ride her e¨Cbike in her quest to find work. Jasmine stayed near the shop anyway. It would not take her long to travel home by foot, so it was no big deal for Liberty to have the keys to her ride. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I should walk more. It¡®ll help with my weight loss. ¡± Liberty turned down Jasmine¡®s kind offer. She had made up her mind to shed the pounds. Liberty had always assumed that she put on between thirty to forty pounds. It had been a long time since she stepped onto a scale, and now she found out that she was over fifty pounds heavier than before she got married! That was a huge shock! Liberty did not believe her sister when thetter said she weighed two hundred pounds in. Serenity was pretty urate with her numbers. She wanted to cover her face in shame. Jasmine smiled without saying any more. Serenity carried her nephew out and gave her sister a few words of advice before seeing her sister off. Serenity mumbled under her breath, ¡°You can do it, Liberty!¡± ¡°Don¡®t worry. If Liberty doesn¡®t find a job in the next two days, I¡®ll tell my parents to hire her to collect rent. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°O Great Property Mogul, please take me under your wing. ¡± ¡°Those are my parents¡® properties, not mine. We¡®re two birds of a feather. Hang on. You should take me under your wing. You¡®re on a double ie, and you have a husband. I only have one source of ie to feed myself and leave my family just enough so they don¡®t starve. ¡± Serenity was amused by her best friend. The pair turned on their heels and went back into the shop. Chapter 294 Chapter 294 Chapter 294 Several cars drove along and quickly pulled up in front of Serenity¡®s bookshop. Serenity and Jasmine, who had just entered the shop, looked at the fleet of cars. Serenity¡®s face fell when her keen eye caught the cars belonging to her cousins. These people were relentless. With Mike leading the younger pack, they walked into the shop. They came bearing two baskets of fruits each. ¡°Serenity. ¡± With a smile on his face, Mike put his baskets of fruits on the cash register and said to Serenity, ¡°I bought you and your sister some fresh fruits. ¡± Spotting Sonny, he asked, ¡°Is this your sister¡®s son? He looks like your sister. ¡± He then reached out to stroke Sonny¡®s head, but Sonny shied away, refusing to let the man touch him. Mike responded with a grin, ¡°Don¡®t be scared, little guy. I¡®m your uncle. ¡± The rest wanted to ce the other fruit baskets on the cash register but since there was no more room on the counter, they ced them on the floor instead. Serenity asked faintly, ¡°What brings you here? I¡®d advise you to give up if you¡®re trying to make me pay. ¡± ¡°Aren¡®t you going to invite us to have a seat, Serenity?¡± John kept a smile on his arrogant face. Out of all his cousins and brothers, he was most sessful as his annual sry was more than a million bucks. This was what he took pride in. He barely looked straight at Serenity when he came to look for her the first time. He had been suspended from work for a while now. There was no telling when he could return to work. There was still a possibility that he might lose his job. His brothers, cousins, uncles, and parents had also hit a low point in their careers and businesses. They would be screwed if their savings were not keeping them afloat. They would not be able to hold out for long. If Serenity and Liberty refused to reconcile, their hard¨Cearned family assets that had been around for two generations would be lost. His youngest cousin, Noah, was still detained in prison. They tried to bail him out, but no amount of money could persuade the authorities to let Noah go. It must be the doing of the force behind Serenity. After much discussion among the Hunts, they decided to make nice with Serenity and Liberty while figuring out the identity of Serenity¡®s ally so they could undermine Serenity¡®s bond with her ally. Once that was done, they could get even with Serenity and then some! Serenity said callously, ¡°I don¡®t have that many chairs in the shop. You can sit on the floor if you don¡®t mind. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Ignoring the stiffened smiles across her cousins¡® faces, she added, ¡°The floor isn¡®t dirty. I¡¯d usually mop once a week. ¡± The Hunt boys were speechless. Jasmine sniggered. Truth be told, they mopped the floor every day, especially with Sonny around now. Sonny was a kid, and he often enjoyed ying with his toys on the floor. That was why the floor was kept clean. Swallowing his anger, Mike curled his lips and replied, ¡°We¡®re here today to apologize to you and your sister. Is your sister here?¡± ¡°My sister isn¡®t around. You can just tell me what you have to say. ¡± Serenity nced at the fruit baskets before putting on a fake smile. ¡°Is this your apology? So, a few fruit baskets to make up for the nder on Twitter and the damage you¡®ve done to me and my sister?¡± After Serenity retaliated online, the Hunts hired a lot of professional trolls to whitewash themselves and use Serenity and Liberty of being ungrateful granddaughters. The enragedizens were the ones who attacked the trolls and caused the Hunts¡® ns to fail. Serenity and Liberty earned everybody¡®s pity following the twist of events. Still, there were people who imed the moral high ground, saying that despite the negligence and wrongdoings of Serenity and Liberty¡®s grandparents, they were still the girls¡® grandparents. TI Without the grandparents, their father would not have existed, and neither would the girls. These people demanded Liberty and Serenity let go of the past and pay for their grandmother¡¯s medical fees. They should not be petty with a sick olddy. Serenity and her sister¡®s reputation had, more or less, been dragged through the mud. Chapter 295 Chapter 295 Chapter 295 John paused before asking Serenity, ¡°What do you want us to do, Serenity?¡± As the oldest of the bunch, Mike lectured Serenity,¡± Regardless of our spats in the past, we¡®re all one big family. Although your dad isn¡¯t around anymore, he¡®s still my uncle. ¡°Sure, it was our fault, but we have learned from our mistakes. You¡®re the bigger person. Please find it in you to forgive us. We promise we won¡®t ever do that to you and your sister again. ¡± Thanks to the power of the inte, it was easy and speedy to get a handle on certain matters. However, it was also easy for the tables to turn and caused a backfire. Today, Mike could use the inte to intimidate his cousins, but tomorrow, it would be his turn to face a public bacsh. People would find it hard to understand the humiliation of being a victim of cyberbullying, hate comments fromizens, and public criticism without experiencing it themselves. Since Serenity tweeted a refute, the Hunts had the whole thing blow up in their faces. They either lost their jobs, suffered great losses in their businesses, or faced cancetions on agreed deals. Furthermore, their names were tarnished. The Hunts had gone through sleepless nightstely. Of course, they were mostly peeved and furious. They were losing sleep, thinking of ways to get back at Serenity and Liberty. Serenity scoffed coldly. ¡°I¡¯m vile, spiteful, and petty. You did what you did to put the bite on me and my sister. You couldn¡®t get what you wanted and chose to yield because the tables had turned. N?velDrama.Org ? content. ¡°Hang on. No. You¡®re not yielding. You came to apologize today because theizens are on your case, and it has been detrimental to your financial interest. You¡®re here today to protect your assets, not because you feel guilty for whatever you have done. ¡± Did they take her for a fool? Did they think she would not be able to see through their ns? The first time the Hunt boys came to make peace and wanted Serenity to visit Old Mrs. Hunt, they were going to take a video of the whole reconciliation so the world would know and move on. The attention would no longer be on them. After Serenity rejected their peace offering, Noah threatened to smash her shop. Holding a grudge, Noah brought along hooligans to stop her in the middle of the road and get violent with her. Serenity would have ended up in the hospital if she had not practiced self¨Cdefense. Her uncles had kicked up a fuss because she called the cops to arrest Noah. Serenity did not believe that these no¨Cgood rtives had repented. They had the mindset that they were always right while Serenity was in the wrong. ¡°Serenity, aren¡®t we sincere enough?¡± As a senior executive of Stone Group¡®s subsidiarypany with an annual ie of over a million bucks, John became a stuck-up as he was often surrounded by ttery and brown¨Cnosing from his employees. He did not have much patience either. Pointing at the fruit baskets, he pulled a sour face and said, ¡° Can¡®t you see how many fruit baskets we have given you? Do you know how much one basket costs? You probably wouldn¡®t spend that much on a fruit basket. ¡°Yet, we gave you so many. How can you question our sincerity? You¡®re pushing your luck, Serenity. Is this the thanks we get? Don¡®t think for a second that we can¡¯t get to you. We¡®re only trying to reconcile because your dead father is our uncle, and we don¡®t want Granddad and Grandmom to be angry since they¡®re not getting any younger. ¡± Chapter 296 Chapter 296 Chapter 296 ¡°Do you think you¡®ll be better off if we all go down together when ites down to it? You¡®ll lose your shop and your online business. We¡®ll team up to give you a poor rating until you¡®re forced to close your online business. ¡± ¡°Serenity, who¡®s threatening to close your online business? Who¡®s threatening to give you bad ratings?¡± Here to look for Serenity, Elisa got out of her car and caught John¡®s arrogant threats before she even entered the shop. Elisa was not one with a good temper, so she lost it. Did they not know that Serenity was her love guru? Anyone who had the guts to threaten her love guru was crossing her as well. She would make these cocky and shameless people regret they were alive. Carrying the boxes of desserts from Beans and Cream, Elisa dangled her car keys and lifted her chin high as she walked into the shop. Others may not know Elisa, but John held a senior position at one of Stone Group¡®s branches. He had seen Elisa a few times from afar during thepany¡®s annual conferences, so he remembered her face. With Elisa turning up at the shop, color washed off John¡®s face. John knew that he was suspended from duty not only because theizens tagged the headquarters at the turn of events, calling for his termination as he was a shameless menace to hispany. It was also because Elisa could not stand his tweet going viral and taking attention away from the gossip about her and Zachary, which got on Elisa¡®s nerves. Everybody at York Corporation and Stone Group was aware that Elisa was crazy for Zachary and her rather public advances toward Zachary. ¡°M-Ms. Stone. ¡± With a smile on his face, John came forth and sucked up to her like apdog. ¡°What brings you here, Ms. Stone?¡± Elisa looked askance at him. ¡°Who are you? Beat it. Get out of the way!¡± John moved aside and gave way to Elisa. Still bearing smiles, he introduced himself, ¡°Ms. Stone, I¡®m John Hunt, the deputy managing director of Aron PCB. ¡± It then dawned on Elisa. ¡°Oh, you¡®re John. Hold on. Aren¡®t you fired? Why are you still the deputy managing director of Aron PCB? It exins your arrogance. I guess only the shameless wouldmit a shameless act. ¡± LLL Elisa immediately whipped out her phone and called her brother. She ranted the moment her brother picked up the phone. ¡°Clive, why are you retaining John Hunt, the deputy managing director of Stone Group¡®s subsidiary company, Aron PCB? Fire him right now. ¡°So what if he¡®s highly capable? Can¡®t we hire someone else who¡¯s equally if not more capable? Fire him now. I don¡®t care if you have to pay him for the dismissal, just sack him. He has stepped on my toes. I¡®m really, really angry right now. I¡®m going to drive the car into a tree or a wall if you don¡®t get rid of him. You¡¯ll have to buy me a new car if the car crashes. ¡± Everybody was at a loss for words. This was Serenity¡®s firsthand experience of Elisa¡®s willfulness. WILL It was a good thing Elisa would only crash into a tree or wall instead of innocent pedestrians when she was mad. Otherwise, the feisty girl should never be provoked as the consequence would be deadly for many. Serenity was thinking about talking some sense into Elisa when their friendship grew and became solid. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She was damaging her own car by driving it into a tree in a fit of rage. What if she lost control of the car and hurt somebody in the process? It would be devastating. Chapter 297 Chapter 297 Chapter 297 On the other end of the line, Clive was left overwhelmed by his dear sister. He asked helplessly, ¡°What did John do to you?¡± ¡°Serenity is my friend and love guru. He¡®s out to get my love guru, threatening to bring down Serenity¡®s business and closing her online business by giving her bad ratings. That¡®s having it in for me. ¡°Don¡®t you think what his family has done is inhumane? People will criticize us if Stone Group retains such a person at a managerial level. You might think you know some people, but you¡®ll never know their true nature. Looks can be deceiving. ¡± Clive had no words. He was rendered speechless by his sister¡®s unruliness. The managing director of Aron PCB had reported to headquarters, verifying John¡®s talent. John started off with a minor role at Aron PCB and climbed his way up to deputy managing director. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. The managing director did not want to lose his right¨Chand man over a family dispute. Hence, he suspended John at the height of the scandal instead of firing him. John turned as white as a sheet while listening in on Elisa¡®s phone conversation. He had finally figured out that Elisa was the force behind Serenity, not Jasmine. John knew it. Jasmine¡®s family only found wealth from the property boom and did not carry much authority. There was no way Jasmine could mess the Hunts up. It made a lot more sense that it had been Elisa all along. The Stone Group granted Elisa the status and power to destroy the Hunts. ¡°Ms. Stone¡­¡± ¡°Shut up. I don¡®t want to hear a word from you, you cruel man. Your family made their fortune through the life insurance of Serenity¡®s parents. Yet, you picked on Serenity and her sister. Aren¡®t you afraid that Serenity¡®s parents will haunt you?¡± Elisa earned herself a bad rap among the upper society of Wiltspoon because of her unreasonable attitude. Nevertheless, she was not mean in nature. Even if she did not befriend Serenity, Elisa would have had a problem with John and his family¡®s misdeeds regardless. ¡°Your call, Clive!¡± Clive replied helplessly, ¡°Got it. I¡®ll speak with Mr. Ziegel to let John go. I won¡®t employ him despite his talent since he got on my sister¡®s nerves. Will that do? Don¡®t go banging your car into a tree. We¡®d have to pay for the damaged greenndscape if you do that. ¡± Seeing that her threat worked on her brother, Elisa happily put down the phone and said to John, ¡°I¡®m putting this out there now. It¡®s your fault if anything happens to Serenity¡®s shop. It¡®s your doing if Serenity gets bad ratings for her online business. Don¡®t me me for what¡®s toe. I¡®ll see that you won¡®t be able to survive with the most menial jobs. ¡± The Hunt boys were lost for words. ¡°Ms. Stone, we¡­¡± ¡°Get lost! Not another word from you!¡± With a grim look on her face, Elisa told the Hunts to leave. ¡°Serenity, take the broom and throw them out if they refuse to leave. Don¡®t waste your manners on them. ¡± She then picked up a fruit basket and hurled it out. It was to make room for her desserts. Now that they found out who Elisa was, the Hunts dared not say a word. Pale in the face, John drew close to carry the two fruit baskets out. The rest went to take the other fruit baskets away. Chapter 298 Chapter 298 Chapter 298 John even picked up the scattered basket and fruits that were tossed out by Elisa. A fruit basket cost a couple of hundred bucks. The Hunts would rather eat the fruits than give them to Serenity. As if Serenity cared. It was not like she never ate fruits before. John took a ride in Mike¡®s car to get to Serenity¡®s shop. He got into the car and called his boss, Mr. Ziegel, right away. John wanted to exin to Mr. Ziegel about the earlier incident. Unfortunately, Mr. Ziegel had already received notice from the headquarters. Before John could finish talking, Mr. Ziegel expressed his regret. ¡°John, the dispute between you and your cousins is simple and easily resolvable. You could¡®ve apologized with earnestness and issued a public apology online. Not only will your cousins forgive you, but the onlinemunity will also let the thing go since you¡®re willing to admit fault and change for the better. ¡°But what did you do? You¡®ve been on suspension for a while, but you couldn¡®t even take care of the matter. Things have only gotten ugly. You angered Ms. Stone and disappointed the headquarters. Arrange for a time to do your handover at the office. I¡®d suggest you refrain from looking for a job for now. Ms. Stone would make it hard for you to get a job in the city. ¡± ¡°Mr. Ziegel¡­ Mr. Ziegel¡­ I¡­¡± Mr. Ziegel had hung up on him. Furious, John was tempted to smash the phone. How was he supposed to know that Serenity and Elisa were good friends? It never crossed his mind that Elisa would overhear his threats. Behind the wheel, Mike asked his cousin, ¡°Do you reckon there¡®s a way out of this?¡± ¡°I¡®m told to return to the office for a handover. Mr. Ziegel suggests that I don¡®t look for a job for now. Ms. Stone will be out to get me. ¡± John was bitter. Mike was livid too. Ms. Stone was totally unreasonable. She had the nerve to use them of shamelessness when she was no better than them. She thought little of them just because she was born into a good family. A whileter, John uttered resentfully, ¡°Since they kicked me out of thepany, I¡®m going to apply for a job with theirpetitor. It¡®ll be a piece of cake to join York Corporation. Stone Group should not me me for going against them. LL ¡°An eye for an eye. Do they think I can¡®t live without Stone Group?¡± Bigpanies loved to acquire talent from their rival companies to get apetitive advantage. John was a talent from Stone Group, so he trusted York Corporation would wee him to the team. Once he found his two feet and climbed up the corporatedder, John would have the chance to shoot Elisa down in Mr. York¡®s presence. Elisa could forget marrying into the York family. The unreasonable woman did not deserve the heir of the Yorks and icon of the business world. ¡°Mike, we shouldn¡®t bother apologizing to Serenity. That brat won¡®t let us off the hook. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She¡®s trying to get us to apologize publicly on Twitter. Well, dream on!¡± John said wickedly, ¡°I¡®ll drive a wedge between her and her husband, and destroy her marriage once I get into York Corporation. I want Serenity and her sister to suffer and regret what she did to me today. ¡± He heard that Serenity¡®s husband was working at York Corporation. John would have many opportunities to befriend her husband when they became colleagues. It would be easy to set the couple at odds. Mike replied, ¡°Did you think I wanted toe? We¡¯re suffering dire consequences here. My friends in the city have cut ties with me over it. I¡®ve spent years buildingworks, but I lost them in a second. It¡®s been hard on my business. Who would want to apologize if not to protect our financial interests?¡± Chapter 299 Chapter 299 Chapter 299 John was without a word. As mentioned by Serenity, the Hunts would never have yielded unless the matter was so bad that it hurt their financial interest. They had not given inpletely either. N?velDrama.Org ? content. The Hunt often got on Serenity¡®s nerves every time they went to her shop. ILL It was like Mr. Ziegel said; theyplicated a simple thing and were nowhere near resolving the issue. ¡°How did Serenitye to know Ms. Stone? What love guru was she talking about?¡± John pursed his lips and replied, ¡°Ms. Stone is crazy for Mr. York. I guess Serenity is teaching her how to woo Mr. York. Serenity will get it once Mr. York finds out she had been giving ideas to Ms. Stone. ¡± ¡°I mean how did they know each other? By right, Serenity wouldn¡®t cross paths with an heiress like Ms. Stone. ¡± Mike was envious that Serenity rubbed shoulders with Ms. Stone and got Ms. Stone to have her back. Elisa might not be working at Stone Group, but she was still the heiress of the Stones. This title carried weight. Her brother was one of the best CEOs in Wiltspoon. ¡°Who knows how they met? I suddenly thought of an idea to deal with Serenity. It¡¯ll ruin her rtionship with Ms. Stone. ¡± Quick to catch on, Mike said, ¡°Are you going to squeal on Serenity to Mr. York? But how are you going to meet the big IN man? I heard you must make an advance appointment to see him, and you might not even get one. The appointment is filtered and reviewed before it reaches Mr. York. ¡°I also heard that many employees of York Corporation have not met Mr. York despite working there for many years. ¡± The heir of the wealthiest York family was a godlike presence to ordinary businessmen like them. While they had heard rumors about the man, there was no way they could meet Mr. York in person. If Mike had the opportunity to see Mr. York, he was willing to get down on his knees to get into Mr. York¡®s good graces. ¡°I can¡®t meet the man himself, but I have other ways to let him know about it. Ms. Stone would wait in front of York Corporation every day just for a chance to see Mr. York. I believe he is annoyed by Ms. Stone. I can use that to my advantage¡­ ¡°Even if Mr. York still refuses to see me, I¡®ll write an anonymous letter. I¡®m sure he¡®d make some time to nce through since he could get rid of a nuisance. ¡°Do you think Mr. York would spare Serenity for giving ideas to Ms. Stone in courting him? We won¡®t even need to do anything while Mr. York forced Serenity and Liberty out of the city. They would not be able to show their faces around Wiltspoon. ¡± After much thought, Mike said, ¡°You can try. Serenity¡®s acting tough because Ms. Stone stands up for her. ¡± Serenity was in the dark about the Hunt boys¡® discussion to use Mr. York against her. 1 She thanked Elisa and responded, ¡°Thank you for sticking up for me, Ms. Stone. ¡± Elisa replied unconcernedly, ¡°It¡®s no big deal. We¡®re friends. Don¡®t be a stranger. I¡®ve got you covered. That¡®s what he gets for threatening my people. He wouldn¡®t learn unless I taught him a lesson. L ¡°Serenity, don¡®t reconcile with them. They¡®re a nasty piece of work. They¡®ll never see the error of their ways. Even I can¡®t beat them. ¡± It appeared Ms. Stone had an inkling of her reputation. Jasmine agreed with Elisa. Her mind had been blown a lottely. She had seen too many examples of the worst kind of people. Serenity¡®s rtives and Hank¡®s family were something else. LE LE ¡°I won¡®t make peace with them unless they issue a public apology. ¡± Serenity stuck to her guns. Since they tarnished her and her sister¡®s name on the inte, she expected a public apology online in return. Otherwise, there was no deal on the reconciliation. It would not take long for another falling out to happen even if she patched things up with the rtives. Serenity intended to take the rtives to court to repossess her parents¡¯ home after the thing with Liberty was over. Chapter 300 Chapter 300 Chapter 300 ¡°Ms. Stone, Serenity, carry on with your talk. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. I¡®m taking Sonny to the supermarket to get some vegetables. ¡± There was still a lot of seafood given by Elisa in the fridge. They could enjoy a seafood menu today, but some greens were needed toplement the seafood galore. Jasmine carried Sonny and took off. While being carried away, Sonny would turn back and stare back at Elisa. Elisa remarked with a smile, ¡°Serenity, you have an adorable nephew. ¡± ¡°He¡®s a cheeky monkey. ¡± ¡°Kids nowadays can be rascals. I¡®m getting your nephew a toy when I drop by next time. ¡± ¡°It¡®s fine, Ms. Stone. Sonny has a lot of toys. My husband bought loads for him. ¡± Elisa said, ¡°You get yours, and I¡®ll get mine. I adore the little man. I want to buy him lots and lots of toys. If he was my nephew, I would buy him the moon assuming that I can. ¡± Serenity could testify that Elisa would spoil a child rotten. With Jasmine and Sonny away, Serenity went into the kitchen to prepare the seafood. She asked Elisa, ¡°Ms. Stone, do you want to stay for lunch? It¡®s a home¨Ccooked meal though. I won¡®t insist that you join us if you¡®re fussy with food. ¡± Serenity was confident in her cooking, but she could not guarantee that Elisa could get used to eating her home¨Ccooked food. IL ¨C LLLLL After much thought, Elisa replied, ¡°Maybe next time. I waited all morning for Mr. York to pass by on the road, but I didn¡®t see him. I n to wait for him at Wiltspoon Hotelter. He goes there for lunch every day. ¡± Serenity responded with a smile, ¡°Alright then. You can do it. You¡®re bound to win his heart. ¡± L LLL ¡°I will do my best. ¡± With Zachary brought into the topic, the girls began to dive deep into the conversation. A car was approaching outside. It was Grandma May¡®s ride. Of course, the second¨Chand vehicle was newly bought to y along with Zachary¡®s cover as a man belonging in the middle ss. Nevertheless, Grandma May got out of her car, only to climb back in when she spotted Elisa¡®s car parked outside the shop. She urged the chauffeur, ¡°Quick! Go, go, go!¡± The feisty girl of the Stone family was there. Grandma May would be walking right into trouble if she went into the shop L Although puzzled by what was going on, the chauffeur stepped on the gas and drove off right away as directed by the Old Mrs. Coming out of the kitchen, Serenity picked up on the engine noise outside. She did not go out of the shop for a look, thinking it was merely a car passing by. Grandma May made a clean getaway. She was kind enough to give her oldest grandson a call. With Zachary picking up the call, Grandma May said, ¡°Zack, the feisty Stone girl is at your wife¡®s shop. y it smart when you go there for lunchter. Don¡®t rush in there and blow your cover. Serenity hasn¡®t fallen in love with you yet. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°In the afternoon, I¡­ Sure. I will. Thank you for letting me know. ¡± Before Zachary could snap back about not having lunch at Serenity¡®s shop, he suddenly remembered his ns to deliver proof of Hank¡®s infidelity and their new furrypanions to Serenity Chapter 301 Chapter 301 Chapter 301 ¡°I¡¯ll leave you to your work then. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡± Grandma May did not take up too much of her grandson¡¯s time. After the phone call, Zachary put his phone on the desk and leaned back against his ck swivel chair while resting his right elbow against the arm of the chair for his hand to brush his chin. His chin felt prickly. It was time to shave. Elisa and his wife were getting on well. Should he figure out a way to wreck their rtionship? The girls would be best friends at this rate. Elisa was bound to find out that Serenity was her love rival when Zachary spilled the beans to Serenity about his identity. Rage would drive Elisa to take it out on Serenity since the former would not be able to let it go. With Zachary around, he would not allow Elisa to harm Serenity. Zachary contemted for a while before giving up on that thought. He was not someone who could not protect his wife. Why should he be scared of Elisa? The girls should bond as they liked. It would only do Serenity good to hit it off with Elisa. At least, Elisa would go to bat for her. People would think it was Elisa who was running things behind the scene instead of him. It aided his purpose to remain incognito. Zachary refused to admit that he had no control over Serenity¡¯s circle of friends. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. The way you carry yourself doesn¡¯t go with our brand. You might want to look elsewhere. ¡± Before Liberty could sit down, the female interviewer with a slender figure handed Liberty her resume back while giving Liberty a look of disdain. Dumbstruck at first, Liberty soon turned flushed as she took her resume from the woman. Out of the many interviews she had, this interviewer was the most blunt to say her appearance was not befitting their vacant post. She was only applying for an administrative clerk position in the finance department. As someone who had made it to a directorial position, Liberty had set her sights low but she was still rejected. Crunching her resume, Liberty forced a smile and asked the interviewer, ¡°Can I ask why my image isn¡¯t what thepany is looking for?¡± The woman stared at her thick waistline and replied, ¡°Since you asked, I¡¯m going to be honest. Although we don¡¯t have high expectations for the clerks in finance more than we have for receptionists, look at you. You must be at least two hundred pounds heavy. I bet you struggle to walk at that weight. How could you pig yourself out?¡± C Liberty went red in the face. A whileter, she asked in anticipation, ¡°I will keep up with the weight loss. Miss, I really need a job. Can you give me a chance? I have the experience to handle the job well. ¡± It seemed nowadays people on a job hunt were fat¨Cshamed. ¡°It¡¯s your business to lose weight. We only have one vacancy, but there are many applicants who are far better than you. We have so many people to choose from. ¡± Sure, the fat woman was a finance director and had more than enough experience, but she had been out of work for years. Plus, she had a two¨Cyear¨Cold at home. Who knew if the fat woman was going to have a second child? Maybe the fat woman would get pregnant a couple of months into the job. Thepany would not be able to dismiss her and be left to pay for her maternity leave. Besides, there were many applicants after any position in Lewis & Co. It was not like thepany could not fill the position as they were not short of talented candidates. The interviewer had no rtion to the fat woman, so the former had no obligation or need to hire the latter. Liberty knew that the interview was a bust. She could not hold back at the thought that the woman rejected her for her size. Liberty said, ¡°Yourpany won¡¯tst long with employees like you who judge people by their appearances. ¡°Yes, I¡¯m fat, but who¡¯s to say fat people can¡¯t work? You¡¯re making it out like it¡¯s a beauty contest when you¡¯re hiring for a clerical position. Fine. Have it your way. I don¡¯t care. ¡± Having been put in her ce, the woman grew furious and pointed at the door while snapping at Liberty, ¡°You fat cow! Get out of here! So what if I think you¡¯re fat? So what if I refuse to hire you?¡± Chapter 302 Chapter 302 Chapter 302 ¡°Your husband might reject you for being fat and ugly. You¡¯ll have something to cry about when your husband finds a young and beautiful girl. ¡± The words hit Liberty where it hurt. She was in a hurry to find a job because her husband had found her repulsive and cheated on her. Liberty set her standards low and applied for a clerical position, so she would have the chance to win custody of her son. It never urred to Liberty that she would face rejection and humiliation here. ¡°Call me a fat cow one more time!¡± The interviewer walked around the table and approached Liberty to push her out while berating her, ¡°Fat cow! Fat cow! I¡¯ll say it again and again. Get out of here!¡± Liberty¡¯s fats came to good use for a change. Liberty nted her feet there as the woman had a hard time shoving her out. ¡°Apologize to me. You must apologize. I¡¯m not leaving until you apologize. ¡± Livid, the woman turned back to her desk and picked up her phone to call security so they coulde in and kick Liberty out. Two security guards soon arrived. Men were stronger than women.Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Plus, there were two of them. The security guards manhandled Liberty to get her out. ¡°Let go of me! I want her to apologize to me! She was verbally abusive!¡± 1/3 Liberty put up a fight. The anxiety of failing to get a job, the betrayal of her husband in their marriage, and the sense of loss for the future were tearing Liberty up inside, leaving her emotions running high and boiling. As she was big and strong, the two security guards could not hold her vigorous tussle down. The woman walked out of the interview room and called a few male coworkers over, so they could help the security guards to escort Liberty out. With the help of a few men, Liberty was kicked out of the office building. ¡°What¡¯s going on here?¡± Duncan was walking with a client into the building when he came face¨Cto¨Cface with the group. Pulling a long face, his secretary tried to get to the bottom of the matter. ¡°This woman was here for an interview, but for some reason, she got into a fight with Ms. Chaplin. Ms. Chaplin told us to escort her out. ¡± One of the security guards exined. The secretary waved his arm. ¡°Take her away. ¡± ¡°Hold on. ¡± Duncan recognized the woman who was being ushered out by a few men to be the plump woman who damaged his luxury sedans. It was the sister¨Cinw of his best friend, Zachary. Everybody stopped in their tracks. 2/3 Liberty took the opportunity to free herself from their grasps. While feeling out of breath from the struggle, she tidied up her attire and jogged back to collect her resume scattered on the floor. She was about to leave when a human wall came in her way. Lifting her head, she was met with Duncan¡¯s scarred face. ¡°Mr. Lewis?¡± Liberty cried in surprise. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Seeing that Liberty and Duncan knew each other, everybody was taken aback. Ms. Chaplin was appalled and freaking out. The fat woman knew their CEO! Duncan said amusingly, ¡°This is mypany so of course, I¡¯m going to be here. Did youe here for an interview? What¡¯s all the fuss over an interview?¡± Chapter 303 Chapter 303 Chapter 303 ¡°This is yourpany?¡± Liberty had no doubts that this was Duncan¡¯spany after pulling herself out of the shock. Thepany¡¯s name was Lewis & Co. after all. Zachary mentioned that Mr. Lewis was an important client of hispany. It never crossed Liberty¡¯s mind that Duncan was the CEO of Lewis & Co. Liberty was still in the working scene when Lewis & Co. was on the rise, so she knew what thepany was made of. However, she had never connected the dots between Duncan and the CEO of Lewis & Co. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I don¡¯t want to make a scene. N?velDrama.Org ? content. I came for the interview, but your interviewer said the way I carry myself doesn¡¯t befit thepany¡¯s image. I asked for the reason, and she answered that I¡¯m too fat. She fat¨Cshamed me. I was furious and put her down for that. She then called me a fat cow and told me to get lost. ¡°Lewis & Co. is one of the biggestpanies here in Wiltspoon. I always thought the employees of yourpany would have ss. I¡¯m surprised to find otherwise. ¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, I¡­¡± Ms. Chaplin came forward to exin, but she dared not breathe a word after Duncan gave her a look. Duncan asked Liberty, ¡°What position were you applying for?¡± ¡°Finance clerk. I have an impressive resume working as a finance director before. ¡± Duncan took the resume from her and said, ¡°Give me a moment. I¡¯ll give you an answer in a bit. ¡± He then said to his client apologetically, ¡°Mr. Daniels, I need to attend to a matter. Can you wait for me at my VIP reception?¡± Duncan gestured to the secretary to take Mr. Daniels upstairs. He walked out of the office building and pulled out his phone to call his best friend. Duncan waited until his friend picked up before muttering, ¡°Zachary, I ran into your sister¨Cinw again. She came for an interview in mypany and had a spat with the interviewer. She was nearly kicked out by the security guards. ¡± Zachary was speechless. His sister¨Cinw must be feeling upset now. ¡°What position was she interviewing for?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°An administrative clerk position in the finance department. She used to be a finance director. Well, she has the experience for sure. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s a waste of her talent. Just do what you see fit. You can hire her if you think she¡¯s up for the job. You don¡¯t have to give her a job because of me. ¡± ¡°Of course. I¡¯ll give the job to a talent, not because of who they know. I just want to let you know. That¡¯s all. Why do I keep bumping into your sister¨Cinw? I haven¡¯t gotten a new car yet. No, I should head to the car dealership this afternoon and get a cheaper ride. ¡± Duncan was traumatized by Liberty. To Zachary, the universe seemed to bring them together. Listening to Duncan¡¯s exaggeration, Zachary smiled and replied, ¡°Don¡¯t be dramatic. She¡¯ll only be a clerk even if she joins yourpany. You¡¯re the CEO. It¡¯s not like you¡¯re going to run into each other all the time. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t think so. I bet the exact opposite will happen. That¡¯s the weird thing about life. ¡± ¡°Try and make sense of the argument. Get your interviewer to apologize if it¡¯s not my sister¨Cinw¡¯s fault. ¡± Zachary was rather protective. Duncan responded with a grin, ¡°With a brother¨Cinw like you, I wouldn¡¯t dare leave your sister¨Cinw feeling wronged. Alright then. I know what to do. Want to have lunch together?¡± ¡°I have a wife. I¡¯m going home to have lunch with my wife. ¡± Duncan rebuked, ¡°So what if you have a wife? I dare you to bring your wife to all the social events. ¡± Zachary answered by hanging up on him. ¡°That man and his pride. All he knows is to unt his marriage in front of us, the single men. He even kept his marriage a secret. Well, I could call him a real man only when he makes his marriage public. ¡± With his best friend hanging up on him, Duncan ran his mouth. A whileter, Duncan walked back into the office building and told Ms. Chaplin off with a stern face, ¡°No need to interview the rest. We¡¯ll hire her. She has the experience, and please apologize to Ms. Hunt! Since this is your first offense, I¡¯ll deduct a month of your bonus. You can expect a pink slip the next time I catch you doing this again. Don¡¯t tarnish thepany¡¯s name. ¡± Chapter 304 Chapter 304 Chapter 304 Duncan¡¯s words drained the color off Ms. Chaplin¡¯s face. Without the guts to defend herself, Ms. Chaplin responded, I¡¯m sorry, sir. I won¡¯t do it again. ¡± She then approached Liberty and said apologetically, ¡°Ms. Hunt, I¡¯m sorry for judging you by your appearance and insulting you. Please forgive me. ¡± CC Now that Liberty had cooled down, she replied embarrassedly, ¡°I was at fault too, Ms. Chaplin. I should¡¯ve watched my tone. Please forgive me for making you mad. ¡± After the pair exchanged apologies, Ms. Chaplin asked when Liberty could start work. With a job secured, Liberty was overjoyed. She was grinning from ear to ear when she said, ¡°I can start work anytime. ¡± ¡°Come tomorrow then. ¡± ¡°Alright. Thank you, Ms. Chaplin. Thank you, Mr. Lewis. ¡± Liberty expressed her gratitude and happily walked out with her resume. ¡°Liberty,¡± Duncan called out to her. Liberty stopped and turned around to face him with a smile. ¡± Do you need anything, Mr. Lewis?¡± ¡°You start tomorrow, right? Run five rounds along the cement pavement in the garden outside before work every day. You¡¯re not allowed to clock in until you do so. ¡± Duncan believed Liberty was way out of shape, but he could look past that for 1/3. his best friend¡¯s sake and give Liberty the opportunity to work. As Duncan did not want the eyes of other colleagues to burn, he requested Liberty to prioritize her health and get in shape. It was also for her own good. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. The smile across Liberty¡¯s face froze. The CEO was asking her to jog a fewps every day before she even started work. By the looks of the garden in front of the office building, onep must be around two hundred meters. It would be tiring to run five rounds. ¡°Got it, Mr. Lewis. I will jog every day. ¡± After the experience today, Liberty knew she should stop letting herself go. Duncan must be using work to make her run and lose pounds since he knew she needed the job. Liberty did not think Duncan was way out of line. In fact, she believed he had her best interest in mind because of her brother¨Cinw. ¡°We have a cafeteria in the office building, so you can have your meals there instead of running all the way home to eat. Please don¡¯t use it as an excuse to eat more than your fill. You¡¯re on probation for three months. If you still look like this after three months¡­¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis. ¡± Liberty interrupted Duncan. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I promise to shed the weight in three months. ¡± Her weight had gone out of control because she ate a lot and skipped the exercise. She should be able to get in shape in three months if she refrained from overeating and got those steps in. Duncan smirked. ¡°I shall wait to see the result at the end of the probation. ¡± He then instructed Ms. Chaplin. ¡°Get to the office early every day and watch her. Don¡¯t let here inside the building if she doesn¡¯t finish her rounds. ¡± Ms. Chaplin respectfully took the order. Liberty was lost for words. She had a beef with Ms. Chaplin. Yet, Ms. Chaplin was tasked to watch her run. There went her chance to ck off. ¡°Nothing¡¯s going on here. You¡¯re all dismissed. Get back to work. ¡± Having resolved the job issue for his best friend¡¯s sister¨Cinw, Duncan waved his arm and told everybody to return to work while he went inside. His client was still waiting for him. Chapter 305 Chapter 305 Chapter 305 Once Duncan and Liberty were gone, everybody around started to specte how their CEO might have met Liberty. It appeared their CEO was watching out for Liberty. ¡°Could she be the CEO¡¯s rtive?¡± ¡°No, I don¡¯t think so. Didn¡¯t you hear the fat woman address the CEO as Mr. Lewis? They have met before, but I guess they¡¯re not very close. ¡± ¡°Do you think our CEO has a crush on the fat woman? He¡¯s thirty¨Cfive this year, but he doesn¡¯t have a girlfriend. ¡± Duncan was a young and promising CEO, but the scar on his face together with his towering and muscr build and prating eyes gave the impression that he was with the mafia. That was the reason he did not have a girlfriend despite being in his mid¨Cthirties. Everybody turned their attention to the person who pointed that out. Ms. Chaplin smacked the back of the person¡¯s head and replied, ¡°What¡¯s in that head of yours? I can¡¯t believe you¡¯d think that. As a woman, I¡¯m turned off by the fat woman. I¡¯m sure you men feel the same if not worse. ¡°All Mr. Lewis has is a scar on his face. He¡¯s pretty hot if you don¡¯t look at that side of his face. A man like Mr. Lewis can get his hands on any woman. Why should he go after a fat cow? ¡°One more thing. Liberty is married and has a two¨Cyear¨Cold boy. ¡± 1/4 The crowd stopped specting the pair in a romantic way. However, they were still curious about Liberty¡¯s rtionship with Duncan. Duncan¡¯s demands for Liberty to run and lose weight were for her own good. As if they would believe nothing was going on between them. The man himself would havemented how he got into the mess if he was aware of the conversation among his employees. Elisa left Wiltspoon School at eleven o¡¯clock in the morning and was headed for Wiltspoon Hotel to stumble upon Zachary. Zachary arrived at the shop by the time Serenity had finished cooking. ¡°Uncle Zak. ¡± Sonny was ying with his toy as Zachary entered the shop. Screaming in joy, he ditched the toy and ran toward Zachary. Serenity was puzzled by her nephew¡¯s sudden attraction to Zachary¡¯s stone face when her gaze fell on the white dog Zachary had on a leash. He was also carrying a double¨Cstory cage that housed two kittens. The kittens were chunky and adorable. Sonny was drawn in by the little animals. It had nothing to do with Zachary¡¯s charMs. ¡°Doggie¡­ Doggie¡­¡± Pointing at the dog, Sonny kept repeating the word ¡°doggie¡±. While undoing her apron, Serenity asked, ¡°Whose pets are these?¡± Zachary ced the cat carrier on the floor and tied the dog leash to the leg of a shelf before picking Sonny up. He then answered his wife¡¯s question, ¡°I asked a friend to get the dog and cats for me. Do you like them?¡± Serenity asked in glee, ¡°Mr. York, are you saying that these pets are for me?¡± Zachary acknowledged faintly. ¡°You mentioned that it¡¯s too quiet at home and that you want to keep a few pets. I bought them for you. The cats are ragdolls, but I can¡¯t remember the breed of the dog. ¡± Serenity eximed cheerfully, ¡°It¡¯s fine. I don¡¯t care about the breed. I love them all. They¡¯re so cute and beautiful. ¡± The dog was not arge breed. She took an instant liking to the dog¡¯s white fur. ¡°Ragdolls are expensive. ¡± Serenity went to y with the kittens. She said, ¡°The ragdolls cost a few thousand dors at the very least, and that¡¯s a friends¨Cand¨Cfamily rate. The kittens must cost you over ten thousand dors each. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± ¡°The price doesn¡¯t matter so long as you like them. Let¡¯s be clear. They¡¯re not allowed in my room. You¡¯re responsible for their care if you want to keep them. You¡¯re on poop duty. ¡± Serenity smiled widely. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. The pets and I won¡¯t step into your territory. I will teach them that your bedroom is off¨Climits. ¡± Her delight amused Zachary. Chapter 306 Chapter 306 Chapter 306 However, Serenity¡¯s words left Zachary dumbfounded. It was not like he could argue since he forbade her from entering his bedroom in the first ce. Simrly, he was not allowed inside hers. Once more, Zachary believed the agreement he signed was restricting himself instead. He would never dream that he would be the first to be tempted to break the contract. Zachary wondered if he could back out of it. Where did she hide the agreement? Should he steal and destroy the contract when she was not at home? It was simply a fleeting thought that Zachary quickly quashed. The Great Zachary York would never do such a brazen act. ¡°What an adorable dog. ¡± Running her fingers down the dog¡¯s fur, Jasmine could not get enough of the dog¡¯s cuteness. Zachary had a good eye. He picked out the most adorable dog and kittens. Sonny fought to get down on the ground. He did not want Zachary to hold him as he wanted to y with the doggie. Serenity pulled out her phone to take pictures of the dog and kittens. However, she did not post it on Facebook right away. Zachary had always kept an eye on her Facebook posts, but now¡­ he still had not added back her contact and Facebook ount. ¡°Serenity, send me the pictures you took. ¡± While she basked in joy, Zachary set up a trap for her to jump in. Serenity blurted, ¡°You deleted my number. Why should I send the photos to you? You¡¯re free to take however many pictures you want. ¡± Zachary fell silent. A whileter, he drew close to Serenity and quietly tugged on the hem of her blouse. A suspicious flush crept onto his cheeks when Serenity shifted her eyes toward him. Zachary whispered, ¡°I was wrong, Serenity. Can I have your number again?¡± 1 Blinking her eyes, Serenity stared at his reddening face. It was hard enough for a prideful man like him to concede but since he also gave her a dog and two kittens as pets, Serenity generously gave him her number. ¡°I¡¯ll block your number if you delete my contact again. ¡± After adding her contact number, Zachary was back to his stoic self. He said in a husky voice, ¡°I won¡¯t make the same mistake twice. ¡± It appeared the couple had drawn the line at deleting contacts. They would be cutting contact if he were to delete her number again. ¡°So, you know you were wrong?¡± Pursing his lips, Zachary took a quick look at Jasmine and Sonny. He found the pair upied with the dog so he leaned into Serenity¡¯s ear and murmured, ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I was wrong about you, but you need to keep a distance from Shawn. He likes you. ¡± Serenity nced at her best friend and matched his hushed tone. ¡°I said, I won¡¯t look for another man before we get a divorce. N?velDrama.Org ? content. ¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. Why was he unhappy again? ¡°Seren! Seren! I found a job!¡± With Liberty¡¯s voiceing through, her round figure soon emerged. She gleefully walked into the shop and yelled, ¡± Seren! I found a job! I¡¯m starting tomorrow. I¡¯ll be working in finance, a post I¡¯m familiar with. ¡± Chapter 307 Chapter 307 Chapter 307 ¡°You¡¯re here too, Zachary. ¡± Seeing that her brother¨Cinw was around, Liberty smiled at Zachary before picking up her son. Liberty smooched her son¡¯s cheeks a few times until the little man was tickled pink. ¡°Liberty,¡± Zachary greeted his sister¨Cinw. ¡°Huh? Where did these cats and a doge from? They¡¯re so cute!¡± Liberty noticed the new members in the shop after kissing her son. ¡°Zachary gave them to me. Liberty, did you find a job?¡± It had been quite some time since Serenity saw Liberty so ted as she did when she came in. Liberty first praised the pets Zachary bought before answering her sister, ¡°I got a job. It was unexpected. I didn¡¯t think I¡¯d bump into someone I know. Seren, do you know where I¡¯ll be working? ¡°It¡¯s Lewis & Co. ¡± Serenity did not pay much attention to the major corporations in town. She only recognized York Corporation, the most well knownpany in the city because her best friend would not stop talking about the heir. She became more familiar with thepany after she got married to Zachary as thetter worked at York Corporation. She remembered Stone Group because of Elisa while the names of other major corporations were not something she 44 kept track of. Serenity did not bother taking interest in things that were unrted to her as she had better use of her time such as selling her crafts online. Hearing that it was Lewis & Co. , she asked with a smile, ¡°Is Lewis & Co. a big deal, Liberty? Did you meet an old colleague, who had changed jobs and is working there now?¡± Liberty was walking on air now that she hadnded a job. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Since it was unnecessary to lie to her sister, Liberty told the truth when recounting what had happened. The story made Serenity angry. Sure, Liberty was heavy, but the Chaplindy had no ss to fat shame her sister. Her sister would have been kicked out of the building if Mr. Lewis did note into the picture. ¡°I was at fault too, Serenity. I was too blunt and made Ms. Chaplin angry for calling her out on it. It¡¯s all in the past now. I got a job and will be working together with Ms. Chaplin. Let¡¯s not talk about ancient history now. ¡°Besides, we have already apologized to one another. I can¡¯t believe Mr. Lewis is the CEO of Lewis & Co. Thank you, Zachary. I think Mr. Lewis only gave me the opportunity because of you. ¡± Liberty could take a hint. Sure, she had met Duncan twice, but not for a good reason. Duncan¡¯s luxury sedans always ended up at the repair shop every time they ran into each other. Duncan probably would have shooed her out if it was not for Zachary. Zachary replied in a low voice. ¡°I didn¡¯t do anything, Liberty. You owe it to yourself to be hired by thepany. Mr. Lewis might be a client of mypany, but he¡¯s a man of principles. He wouldn¡¯t let you work with him if you didn¡¯t have the ability. ¡± Nevertheless, Liberty expressed her gratitude to Zachary multiple times. Serenity was fixated on her husband. Noticing her gaze, Zachary looked at her, and their eyes met. There seemed to be something in Zachary¡¯s eyes. Serenity did not incessantly give thanks to Zachary like her sister even though she knew her sister was likely hired by Mr. Lewis because of Zachary. Serenity intended to wait until they were home alone at night to express her gratitude. She should think of something to give him in return for acting as the conduit in getting her sister a job. ¡°Liberty, Zachary,e and have lunch. You have to get back to workter, Zachary. ¡± Serenity told everybody to get a start on lunch while she entered the kitchen. Zachary quietly followed behind her. She would call him by his name in front of her sister, but Serenity was back to addressing him formally whenever her sister was not around. ¡°Mr. York, I don¡¯t need your help here. ¡± Serenity remarked when she looked back to find her husband tagging along. Tension ran along his facial lines. No sooner had hemented about the way she addressed him in his mind than she proved his grievance to be true. ¡°I came to wash my hands. ¡± Zachary¡¯s gruff voice carried a hint of discontent. However, Serenity was used to it as he had always talked this way anyway. She could not pick up on the displeasure in his tone. He made a beeline to the sink and turned the tap to wash his hands. Chapter 308 Chapter 308 Chapter 308 Zachary turned his head back and looked at Serenity who was focused on carrying two dishes. Zachary quickly nced at the food. It was a te of greens and another te of seafood. This was the seafood Elisa gave Serenity. He tookrge strides over and grabbed the tes from Serenity¡¯s hands. ¡°Since I¡¯m here, I¡¯ll take the dishes out. You won¡¯t have to travel back and forth. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. York. ¡± Instead of leaving, Zachary stopped in his tracks and looked back at her. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Serenity picked up another two dishes after Zachary took over the first two. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. With his dark eyes staring straight at her, Serenity was puzzled and lowered her gaze to her clothes to see if they were stained. ¡°Can you¡­ not call me Mr. York?¡± Zachary voiced his displeasure. It was best toe clean with Serenity about his thoughts as Serenity was in no mood nor did she have the time to guess what was on his mind. She abided by the agreement. ¡°What should I call you then?¡± Pursing his lips, Zachary was at a loss for words. He did not feel it was intimate enough if she addressed him by his name. ¡°Babe¡± would be a good choice, but he did not have to be a rocket scientist to ascertain that she would not call him that. He was not used to being called that either. ¡°Up to you,¡± Zachary said right before carrying the dishes out. Serenity murmured under her breath, ¡°If I don¡¯t call you Mr. York, will you answer me when I call you ¡®babe¡®?¡± He told her to keep their marriage a secret. There were not many who knew they were married. Not taking the matter seriously, Serenity quickly served lunch. Jasmine and Liberty set up the table and wiped it clean. With the couple bringing the food out, Jasmine and Liberty went to the kitchen to help. Grandma May might not be here today to remind Zachary to peel shrimps for Serenity, but Zachary had gained the experience. He sat down at the table, put on disposable gloves, and peeled shrimps before putting the te of deshelled shrimps in front of Serenity. Knowing that Sonny loved eating shrimp too, Zachary set some aside for him. ¡°Thank you, Uncle Zak,¡± Sonny thanked Zachary. Zachary replied tenderly, ¡°I¡¯ll get you more when you¡¯re finished with this. ¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Sonny answered obediently. Chapter UH The little guy had already filled his stomach with a sandwich, but he wanted in on the action. Seeing that Uncle Zak had disposable gloves on, he said to his mother, ¡°Mama, I want that¡­¡± As his vocabry was still limited, Sonny pointed at the disposable gloves Zachary just removed, indicating that he wanted to wear them to eat the shrimp. Liberty believed the gloves were too big for her son, so she replied, ¡°You can eat the shrimp with your hands. We¡¯ll wash your hands when you¡¯re done, okay?¡± Zachary pulled out a pair of disposable gloves and handed them to Sonny. He said to Liberty, ¡°It would be great if Sonny can develop a hygienic habit. ¡± Chapter 309 Chapter 309 Chapter 309 With Zachary putting it out there, Liberty did not argue and helped her son put on the disposable gloves. After lunch, Zachary helped his wife to clear the dirty dishes and brought them to the kitchen to wash. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Liberty could not stop singing praises of her brother¨Cinw in her sister¡¯s presence. Liberty urged Serenity to be nice to Zachary. She was utterly afraid that her failed marriage would discourage her sister from believing marriages could work. Hank was a cheating b*stard, but that did not mean all men were the same. Good husbands still existed in the world. Liberty was not lucky enough to meet the right guy. Serenity replied helplessly, ¡°Got it, Liberty. You don¡¯t have to constantly put in the good word for him. I¡¯m going to help him with the dishes. ¡± She then slipped into the kitchen before her sister could start nagging about Zachary¡¯s greatness again. Liberty told her to treat Zachary right as if she had been bullying and torturing him. Jasmine secretlyughed in a corner. Zachary was getting ready to wash the dishes when he heard approaching footsteps. He turned his gaze to the kitchen door to see that it was Serenity. He said, ¡°I¡¯ll do the dishes. Have a seat. It must be tough to prepare a seafood feast. ¡± ¡°I made a variety of food since you wereing for lunch. ¡± Serenity pushed him aside. ¡°Why don¡¯t you have a drink out there while I clean the dishes? Your sister¨Cinw fears that I mistreat and push you around. She keeps telling me what a great guy you are and how I should be nice to you. I¡¯ve probably heard it a thousand times. ¡± Zachary did not fight over the dishwashing duty. He washed his hands and answered in agreement, ¡°Liberty has been through it, so she knows what¡¯s going on. She said it right. ¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°I brought along the evidence of your brother¨Cinw¡¯s affair. The file is in my car. Should I bring it out to your sister now?¡± ¡°That¡¯s fast. ¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Yeah. My friend¡¯s pretty good at gathering intel. He¡¯s good at what he does. ¡± ¡°Does he own a private investigation agency?¡± ¡°I guess you can say that. ¡± Someone among the Buchams was in that line of work, but the Buchams did not rely on the agency to gather info. The family was rather secretive like the Johnsons in Annenburg. ¡°Give the file to me before you go to work. I¡¯ll hand it to my sisterter. Let her celebrate finding a job today. I don¡¯t want to ruin it for her. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°If your friend doesn¡¯t mind, can you invite him to have dinner at our ce? A hotel would do too. We should thank him for helping. ¡± Zachary responded, ¡°I¡¯m buying him dinner tonight. Don¡¯t worry about that. We won¡¯t owe him any favors. ¡± Since he had a business dinner today, Josh was naturallying along. Josh must wonder how that was considered a dinner treat if he heard this. ¡°All right. Thank you!¡± ¡°It¡¯s no big deal. I hope your sister can break free from the Browns. ¡± Creeps like the Browns did not deserve his sister¨Cinw. Zachary might say so, but he had not broken his gaze at Serenity. Serenity stopped washing the dishes and turned around to face him. She said, ¡°By the way you¡¯re looking at me, I get the feeling that you don¡¯t want my verbal thanks. How about a kiss?¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes deepened. Serenity smiled. ¡°Ah, forget it. I should make you an eagle with hopes that you soar in your career. ¡± Zachary would prefer it if he got the kiss. However, he could not bring himself to say it out loud. With Serenity turning back to washing the dishes, Zachary fell silent for a while before walking out dejectedly. 3/4 w She would usually tease him, but she seemed to stop that now. Perhaps it was due to the few days of silent treatment. Chapter 310 Chapter 310 Facebook Twitter WhatsApp Pinterest Chapter 310 Zachary sat outside for a while before getting ready to go back to work. Serenity came out of the kitchen after washing the dishes. Seeing that he needed to go, Serenity walked with him to his car. Keeping to himself, Zachary grabbed the envelope from his car and turned around to hand it to Serenity. He said in a husky voice, ¡°It¡¯s all in here. ¡± Serenity took the evidence of Hank¡¯s infidelity, intending to thank him once more. Looking into his dark and profound eyes, Serenity looked around and gave up on the thought when she saw people around them. ¡°Watch out on the road. Send me a text message when you¡¯re at the office, so I know you got there safely. ¡± Zachary pressed his lips together before acknowledging gruffly that he heard her. After getting into the car, he gave her a lingering look and drove off. Serenity stood there and watched as his car elerated away while feeling something had changed between them It felt a bit like love. 1 Perhaps she should not hide in her shell anymore. She could try and poke her head out to give love another go. There was still a chance since the six¨Cmonth agreement had note to an end. With that in mind, Serenity took out her phone and sent a text message to Zachary. Serenity: [I wanted to kiss you just now, but I chickened out because there were people on the street. ] She did not get an immediate reply after hitting the send button. Serenity paused for a moment before taking the envelope back to the shop. Sonny was asleep in his mother¡¯s arMs. Jasmine was enjoying cuddles with the two kittens when Serenity returned to the shop. She asked, ¡°Has your man left?¡± ¡°Yeah. His lunch break is over. His work can get busy. He often gets home at midnight. ¡± Serenity stroked the kittens. Zachary gave her two ragdolls all at once. Honestly, Zachary was very good to her. The dog was adorable too. Now that she was a pet owner, Serenity had to ce an online order for dog foodter. ¡°Liberty, there¡¯s a cot there. Let Sonny nap there for a bit, so you don¡¯t have to hold him. ¡± Serenity went up and carried her nephew before handing over the envelope. She said, ¡°Zachary asked a friend to collect evidence of Hank¡¯s affair. ¡± The envelope felt heavy in Liberty¡¯s hand. Chapter 11 Taking in a few deep breaths, Liberty reached her hand into the envelope and pulled out the photographs inside. Apart from the photographs, there was also information on the mistress and receipts of Hank¡¯s gifts to the mistress. The receipts were photocopies. The pictures and the prices of the gifts were also printed on paper. Liberty examined the photographs one by one. Although there was nothing of a sexual nature, they were intimate like lovebirds. The pictures burned Liberty¡¯s eyes. The other woman was about Serenity¡¯s age. She was beautiful, slender, and hot, the type that men would go for in a lover. Jessica Yates! That was the mistress¡¯s name. The gift receipts and pictures were an eyesore. Liberty found it ironic. She quit her job to be a housewife, give Hank a child, and run the household like clockwork. Yet, Hank used her of sitting all day and doing nothing. He only gave her three thousand bucks for living expenses, iming that she only squandered the cash. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Hank even insisted on halving expenses with her. It had been a long time since he had given her anything. Hank was only willing to fork out a thousand and two hundred Chapter 10 bucks for his son¡¯s form. However, he would pick the expensive items for Jessica. The cheapest pair of earrings he bought for her cost a few thousand dors. ¡°Liberty,¡± Serenity cried with worry. Chapter 311 Chapter 311 Chapter 311 Liberty bit her lips, refusing to let herself shed another tear. She had cried for Hank. Liberty did not want to waste any more tears on him. Her tears would not gain her his affection in return, so why should she cry her eyes out? ¡°I¡®m okay. ¡± Liberty inserted the documents back into the envelope while putting on a brave face and saying, ¡°I¡®m so over it. It¡®s not like I¡®m only finding out now that he¡®s cheating on me. ¡°Seren. ¡± Liberty handed the envelope to her sister. ¡°Keep the evidence for me. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Hank might try to transfer away the assets and whatnot if he finds this at home. It won¡®t be good for me. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity grabbed the envelope. Liberty uttered calmly, ¡°I¡®ll pretend I don¡®t know anything and bring up divorce when I hold down the job as you said. I¡®ll fight for what¡®s mine. No way am I going to let them have it!¡± While she might have stopped working after getting married, she had sacrificed a lot for the family. Hank¡®s ie was the couple¡®s joint asset after marriage. She would fight to the bitter end to get his savings and get under his skin! Liberty also paid for the renovation of the house they were staying in. She wanted Hank to return the renovation cost to her. ¡°Liberty, I got your back!¡± Serenity held her sister¡®s hands. ¡°You have me, Liberty. Just fight on!¡± ¡°Seren. ¡± Liberty embraced her sister. Their parents passed away when Liberty was fifteen. With only each other, the sisters hade so far. Liberty refused to be beaten down by a cheating b*stard like Hank. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Liberty¡®s phone suddenly rang. Letting go of her sister, Liberty picked up the phone and looked at the caller ID. It was Hank. After a brief silence, she took the call. ¡°Where are you, Liberty?¡± Hank confronted her from the get-go. ¡°You¡®re not at home all the time. My mom and sister are there but can¡®t get through the front door. ¡± Liberty replied callously, ¡°Didn¡®t you give your mother a set of keys?¡± Since the inws were in possession of the house keys, they coulde and go as they liked without an advance notice. The way they saw it, the house belonged to Hank, so they were not limited to essing it. Sure, only Hank¡®s name was on the title deed, and the house did indeed belong to Hank because it was a prenuptial property. However, Liberty paid for all the renovations. She believed she was owed a share of the house. Liberty would rather trash the home furnishings than let it benefit Hank if thetter did not pay her back for the renovations when they divorced. ¡°My mom forgot to take the keys with her. Where are you now? Go home now. Don¡®t keep my mom waiting. On your way home, check the market to see if you can get live shrimps and crabs. Buy a few pounds worth and cook them for my mom and sister tonight. ¡± , His sister¡®s favorite food was seafood. Liberty answered faintly, ¡°Wire me the money, and I¡¯ll get the seafood. ¡± There was seafood at home as her sister gave a lot to her. However, Liberty did not want to waste it on her mother inw and sister¨Cinw. ¡°How much can a few pounds of shrimps cost? I¡®ve been supporting you financially since we got married. Yet, you want me to wire money for a few pounds of shrimp. Tell me, Liberty. What can you do other than eat? If you don¡®t have the money, ask for it from your sister. I have none. Chapter 312 Chapter 312 Chapter 312 ¡°My sister doesn¡®t owe you. Why should my sister fork out the money to ease your mom and sister¡®s craving for seafood? Hank, I might not have worked and contributed financially to the family in the three¨Codd years we have been married, I have sacrificed a lot for the family. Without me behind you, do you think you¡®d find sess in your career without any worries? LATE ¡°I won¡®t buy the seafood if you don¡®t give me the money. Don¡®t forget to pay for thebor cost too. You said it yourself. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. We¡®re going halves. I have no obligation to cook for your mom and sister, but if you insist, you should pay for the manual labor. ¡°Since we¡®ve been married for three years, I¡®ll only charge you two hundred bucks for it. ¡± Hank yelled on the phone. ¡°All you know is spend money and eat. You eat yourself to obesity! What did you do for the family? I have seen no sacrifice on your part. I got to where I am today because of my hard work. Don¡®t try to take credit for it. ¡°What do you meanbor cost? Isn¡®t my mom your mom too? Name me a daughter¨Cinw who charges to cook for her mother¨Cinw. Anybody would tell you off for doing that. ¡± ¡°Don¡®t expect me to work without wiring me the money. ¡± Liberty then cut off the line. With his wife hanging up on him, Hank was tempted to smash his cell phone in a fit of rage. However, it struck him that he had not bought the phone too long ago, and it was a matching model with Jessica¡®s new phone. He bought two new phones in one go for himself and Jessica. He was reluctant to smash his phone. ¡°That fat cow. I¡®ll divorce your sorry *ss when Sonny gets to kindergarten! Who would want you looking like that after I leave you? You and your antics!¡± Hank went off on Liberty in his office for a long time before wiring five hundred bucks to Liberty to get the seafood. However, he demanded that she keep the receipt for the purchase. He was going to check it when he got home at night. ¡°Did he tell you to go home and cook?¡± Serenity waited for the phone conversation to end before asking. ¡°My mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw are here again. Chelsea loves seafood, but seafood is expensive, so they can¡®t bring themselves to spend on it. They would always want me to buy and cook it for them every time they came. They would stay for a few days in a row, demanding seafood. It cost a lot. ¡°Hank always thinks I waste money. The three thousand bucks for living expenses would¡¯ve been enough if his family doesn¡¯t always visit. ¡± Liberty was not one to spend money recklessly. ¡°Liberty, are you going back to cook dinner for them?¡± ¡°I don¡®t want them to know that I¡®m onto them. I can take it for now. ¡± Liberty was resilient. She needed to gain the upper hand before she could talk divorce. Hence, Liberty had to push through before the fallout. ¡°Liberty, the seafood I gave you¡­¡± ¡°I won¡®t give it to them!¡± Liberty cut her sister off, ¡°Ms. Stone gave you the best quality seafood. Hank only gave me three hundred bucks for the purchase. Two hundred bucks is thebor cost. What can three hundred dors get? It¡®s already afternoon. The seafood isn¡®t as great as the one you find in the morning. They will get what I buy. ¡°I won¡®t waste the seafood you gave me on them. ¡± Liberty must hide the seafood her sister gave her when she got home before Chelsea walked off with it. ¡°I¡®ll figure it out. I won¡®t let them get the best of me even though I must lie low for now. ¡± Liberty added, ¡°I stopped fearing the family since I chased Hank down a few blocks with a knife. ¡± The Browns were something else! ¡°Don¡®t leave until Somny wakes up. ¡± ¡°Sure,¡± Liberty replied. It was her mother¨Cinw¡®s problem that she forgot the house keys and could not get in. Liberty was not in a hurry to open the front door for them. Sonny slept until four o¡®clock in the afternoon before he woke up. Chelsea had called Liberty twice in between, questioning why thetter was not home yet. Liberty responded sarcastically, ¡°I¡®m at my sister¡®s shop. Sonny¡®s asleep, so I¡®ll wait until he¡®s up before I leave for home. You can collect the house keys from me if you can¡®t wait. ¡± Chelsea mmed the phone in rage. Chapter 313 Chapter 313 Chapter 313 Chelsea hung up the phone in fury, unable to get Liberty toe home now despite rushing thetter twice. Chelsea said to her mother, ¡°Mom, Liberty is at her sister¡®s shop. She said something about Sonny being asleep and will only head home when Sonny¡®s awake. She told us to collect the keys from her. ¡± Furrowing her brows, Mrs. Brown replied peevishly,¡° You can carry Sonny home if he¡®s asleep. Serenity owns a car. She can drive them home, and it won¡®t take up a lot of her time. ¡± Mrs. Brown believed her daughter¨Cinw was deliberately making them wait at the door. ¡°She must be doing it on purpose. She¡®s making us wait here for her. ¡± Chelsea shared the same sentiment about her sister¨Cinw. ¡°Mom, you¡®ve forgotten to bring your keys before, and Liberty was not home either. She would rush home to unlock the door whenever we called her. She never left us waiting for a long time, unlike now. Mom, I think Liberty has changed since her fight with Hank. ¡± Mrs. Brown replied, ¡°Yeah, I guess so. ¡± Chelsea ranted, ¡°Liberty beat up Hank thest time and refused to bring him home. We had to persuade Hank to go home, and we were only doing it for Sonny. We would¡¯ve gotten Hank to kick her out if it weren¡®t for Sonny. ¡°The house is Hank¡®s. Hank can throw her out if she gets on our nerves!¡± Liberty used to embrace her sister¨Cinw despite all the criticisms and fault¨Cfinding because Chelsea was her husband¡®s sister. Now that Chelsea found Liberty more of an eyesore, she wanted nothing more than her brother to leave Liberty. Her brother could get a young and beautiful woman like Jessica after the divorce, but nobody would want Liberty once Hank ditched her. Liberty¡®s choices for a new husband would be limited to old men in their eighties. ¡°You can talk about that in front of me, but don¡®t say that to Hank. ¡± Mrs. Brown had a problem with Liberty, but for the sake of her grandson and the peace in her son¡®s marriage, Mrs. Brown had to warn her daughter. Her daughter might just speak ill of her daughter¨Cinw to her son again. ¡°Got it, Mom. I wonder if Lucas would cry at home. ¡± Chelsea did not bring her son along for once. Her son had not recovered from the flu, and it was a viral infection. Her parents were worried Lucas would pass the flu to Sonny if Chelsea brought him along. Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Your dad¡®s there. Lucas¡®s fever has gone down. His cough would take some time to go though. The flu is still contagious. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. We can bring him next time when he¡®s all better. ¡± Chelsea pursed her lips and replied, ¡°You and your dad favor Sonny. Lucas doesn¡®t have a fever now, but you won¡®t let me bring him since you¡®re scared Sonny might catch the flu from Lucas. ¡± Her mom poked her in the head and told her off, ¡°Sonny carries the Brown name. He¡®s the grandson of the Brown family. Lucas¡®sst name is Repton. He also has your husband¡®s side of the family. So, you can¡®tpare them. ¡°Besides, I¡®ve never taken care of Sonny since he was born. All I do is have a quick ytime with him whenever Ie for a visit. Your dad and I have been caring for your three children from the day they were born. You should be happy with that. ¡°Your brother gives me five thousand bucks a month for living expenses, and all the money is spent on your family. Your brother and his wife are kind enough not to fuss about it but don¡®t take everything for granted. How can you use me of ying favorites? ¡°Lucas has the viral flu. You didn¡®t let him out to y with his friends in case he might give the flu to someone else¡®s child. Why aren¡¯t you concerned that your own nephew might catch it?¡± Chelsea clung to her mother¡®s arm and sweet¨Ctalked,¡° I¡®m sorry, Mom. It came out wrong. I just didn¡®t want to be away from Lucas. We¡®re only going home tomorrow. Lucas is still young. I feel bad about leaving him while he¡®s sick. ¡°Sonny is my nephew. I only have one nephew. Of course, I love him. I love Sonny and my son all the same. ¡± ¡°Don¡®t say something like that again. It¡®s disheartening. ¡± Chelsea immediately answered, ¡°I promise I won¡®t, Mom. ¡± She knew her parents helped her out the most. Chapter 314 Chapter 314 Chapter 314 Chelsea had her parents¡® help to look after the children and do the school run while Liberty had to be a full time housewife without any help. Liberty¡®s dependency on Hank¡®s ie gave the Browns an excuse to put the screws on her. Mrs. Brown and Chelsea waited for a while before Liberty returned with Sonny. Serenity emerged behind the mother and son. Serenity was carrying a bag of seafood bought from the market. Mrs. Brown and Chelsea wanted to have a go at Liberty when she arrived, but the sight of Serenity at the back made them hold their tongues. After the domestic violence incident, Mrs. Brown and Chelsea went to look for Serenity but had to flee from Serenity¡®s harsh tirade. Since then, they were haunted by Serenity¡®s presence. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Mrs. Brown quickly put on a smiling face as she went forth to pick Sonny up from his stroller. ¡°Oh, Sonny. I miss you so much. ¡± Holding her grandson up, Mrs. Brown nted kisses on both sides of his cheeks. ¡°Gwanma. ¡± Sonny lifted his arm to brush the areas that were kissed before greeting his grandmother. Chelsea pinched his little cheek and said with a smile,¡° Long time no see. You have chubby cheeks that give a nice squeeze, unlike my son who has gotten thinner. ¡± Sonny pped away her aunt¡®s grip on his face. His aunt was pinching him so hard that it hurt. Before Liberty could say anything, Mrs. Brown reproached her daughter, ¡°It¡®s not nice to call a child fat. ¡°Sonny isn¡®t chubby. He¡®s just right. ¡± Mrs. Brown believed Lucas was a bigger size. ¡°Ah, Serenity¡®s here too. ¡± Mrs. Brown politely greeted Serenity as if she just took notice of Serenity now. Serenity replied faintly, ¡°Yeah. I drove my sister and Sonny back. ¡± She handed the bag of seafood to Chelsea. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Your seafood. ¡± Chelsea was living the life. She had her parents¡® help to run the household and coulde over to her brother¡®s ce to ease whatever craving she had. Only a ridiculous family like the Browns could raise a daughter like Chelsea. Chelsea took the bag and opened it up right away for a look. She eximed, ¡°Why is the shrimp so small? The crabs are tiny. You should get an skan King Crab or something. You can¡®t get much out of these tiny crabs. ¡± She loved to eat the meat in the crab ws. Only the bigger¨Csized crabs had the plump flesh in the pinchers. While opening the front door, Liberty responded, ¡°Hank only gave me three hundred bucks for the seafood. Seafood is expensive. What can three hundred bucks get?¡± Chelsea snapped back, ¡°You¡®re going halves on everything, remember? Hank gave you three hundred bucks, so you have to fork another three hundred out of your pocket. Six hundred dors should be enough to get better quality and bigger seafood. ¡± After opening the door, Liberty grabbed her son over from her mother¨Cinw and nced at her sister¨Cinw. She replied in a t tone, ¡°Hank should be paying for his family¡®s groceries and meals. Simrly, I¡®ll cover for my family¡®s meals when they visit. ¡± Chapter 315 Chapter 315 Chapter 315 Chelsea was about to give Liberty a good dressing¨Cdown when her mother secretly tugged the hem of her blouse. Chelsea had to get to grips with her rage. Serenity helped her sister to push the stroller into the house. Having overheard Chelsea¡®s remark that her sister should fork out three hundred bucks out of her pocket for seafood, Serenity could lose it. These people were unbelievable. ¡°Mom. ¡± Chelsea waited until Serenity and Liberty were inside the house before whispering to her mother, ¡°Why didn¡®t you let me give her a piece of my mind? She eats, sleeps, and spends at my brother¡®s expense! We came here for dinner, and she wants to count with Hank to thest dime. ¡± ¡°Your brother¡®s going halves with Liberty now. We¡®re Hank¡®s family. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Since we¡®re here for dinner, Liberty¡®s only following the system. Do you think she¡®ll do the school runs and cook for your children if you make her mad?¡± Chelsea got over her anger now that she remembered the main reason she was here today. Nevertheless, she whined under her breath. She believed her brother had a wife for nothing. Liberty was dismissive of her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw. ¡°School is almost out, Seren. You should hurry back to the shop to help. I¡®m fine here. ¡± Liberty urged her sister to leave. ¡°I¡®m a bit wary to go, Liberty. ¡± ¡°Don¡®t worry. I¡®m not going to put up with their nonsense. You should get back to work. I¡®ll call you if I need help. ¡± Serenity still did not want to leave. ¡°You¡®re out a lot, leaving Jasmine to watch the shop. You can¡®t keep up with this even if you¡®re best friends. You should get back to the shop and sell some stuff. ¡± ¡°Jasmine understands. She told me to prioritize you. Don¡®t worry about the shop. ¡± ¡°Still, you can¡®t do that just because she doesn¡®t mind it. It¡®s not very nice. Go on. I can manage on my own. It¡®ll be fine. I don¡®t mind chasing them down a few blocks with a knife if they pick on me. ¡± 17. With her sister rushing her to go, Serenity replied, ¡°I¡®ll head back to the shop then. Don¡®t take on too much stuff. Just do what¡®s worth two hundred bucks. ¡± ¡°Of course. I was their free housekeeper for more than three years. Even housekeepers earn their keep. I don¡®t get a sry and get yelled at for spending money and doing nothing all day. ¡± Now that she was dead inside, Liberty was not going to tolerate the abuse anymore. ¡°Take away the seafood you gave me. I don¡®t know when they¡®ll be leaving. I was thinking of hiding it in my room, but the seafood might go bad. You should bring the seafood back and keep it in your fridge. Don¡®t waste it on them. ¡± With Hank insisting on going Dutch, Liberty started to count her pennies over every detail with the family. ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity did not want to let Mrs. Brown and Chelsea have it too. Liberty took the seafood out from the fridge for her sister to store elsewhere. Serenity carried a big bag of seafood out when Mrs. Brown and Chelsea entered the house. They could not help but notice therge bag in Serenity¡®s hand. However, the mother and daughter could not tell what it was as the bag wasyered with multiple stic covers. ¡°Are you leaving, Serenity? Aren¡®t you staying for dinner?¡± Mrs. Brown asked Serenity to stay with a smile. ¡°No. It¡®s rush hour at the shop. I should head back to help. ¡± ¡°I see. Take care then. ¡± Standing at the door, Mrs. Brown watched as Serenity entered the elevator. She only went into the house and closed the door behind her when the elevator doors shut. Liberty was busy in the kitchen. Pretending to know nothing about Hank¡®s affair, she was upied in the kitchen like before whenever her mother ¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw came by. Of course, she would ask for money this time. Sonny was ying in the living room. He dragged out a box of his toys and poured the toys onto the fl Chapter 316 Chapter 316 Chapter 316 Sonny did not stop with just one box. Soon, his toys were scattered all over the living room floor. Not too pleased with the mess, Chelsea shouted, Liberty,e out and tidy up the living room. Sonny threw his toys everywhere. ¡± Liberty walked to the kitchen door and checked out the situation in the living room before replying, Sonny can y for a while more. I¡¯ll clean upter. ¡± She then went back to work in the kitchen. Sonny was at a hyperactive age, going from one thing to the next every few minutes. He turned the living room upside down. Furrowing her brows, Chelsea walked to the kitchen door and leaned against the door frame. She asked, ¡°Liberty, what did you give your sister to take away? It¡¯s a big bag. I hope you¡¯re not giving her the things Hank bought. ¡°Hank works hard for the family, and it¡¯s tiring. Your sister¡¯s married. She has her own family. Get that in your head and don¡¯t just leave all the good stuff to your sister. ¡± Liberty turned back to re at Chelsea. Pulling a sour face, she said, ¡°Seren doesn¡¯t need me to give her anything, unlike some people who don¡¯t spend their own money but expect their brother to pay instead. They would rather eat good food at their brother¡¯s ce than use their money to pay for it. ¡± ¡°You!¡± Liberty¡¯seback made Chelsea see red. Chelsea gave Liberty a dirty look before turning on her heel to walk away. Once her brother was back, Chelsea was going to check with her brother to see if there was anything missing at home. The missing item must be the thing Liberty gave her sister. Knowing that his mother and sister were at his ce, Hank went straight home after work. He entered the house to find a cluttered living room. He cried at the top of his lungs, ¡°Liberty, look at the mess in the living room. Can¡¯t you tidy up? Sonny¡¯s toys are everywhere. ¡°What do you do at home all day anyway? Nothing. ¡± Liberty carried a te of roasted potatoes out to feed her son before having her dinner. Faced with her husband¡¯s usations, she replied sarcastically, ¡°I do nothing all day. That¡¯s why the living room is messy. ¡± Hank was stumped for words.Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡°Sonny did it. You know kids. Lucas always makes a mess at home. Your dad and I have to tidy up multiple times a day. ¡± Worried that the couple would fight again, Mrs. Brown quickly chimed in. Hank grumbled something under his breath, but Liberty did not catch what he said. With Mrs. Brown putting it out there, Chelsea had to quash her ns to feed the mes. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Hank drew close and reached out to stroke his son¡¯s head. Sonny greeted his father before opening his mouth for his mother to feed him. ¡°Did you not make beef stew for Sonny today?¡± Hank asked while watching his son enjoy dinner. ¡°No. Sonny¡¯s two now. He can have something of substance. ¡± ¡°Okay, but you need to give him more protein. Otherwise, he won¡¯t have a bnced meal. ¡± Hank caressed his son¡¯s head. The little guy took after Liberty and looked only a bit like him. ¡°Sure,¡± Liberty answered. Since she had been busy looking for a jobtely, the mother and son had been having meals at Serenity¡¯s shop. Serenity would cook poultry and red meat for Sonny and he had shrimp and pork today. The food tasted good. Sonny loved to eat. ¡°Is dinner ready?¡± Hank asked. ¡°It¡¯s ready. ¡± Liberty put the feeding on hold to show the seafood receipt to Hank. She said, ¡°All three hundred bucks are ounted for. Your sisterined about the size of the shrimps. ¡± Chapter 317 Chapter 317 Chapter 317 Hank gave Liberty the stank eye and questioned, Didn¡¯t I wire you five hundred bucks?¡± Chelsea immediately got up and took quick paces over to get a word in after her brother. ¡°Liberty, did you take Hank¡¯s money? You told me that Hank only gave you three hundred bucks, so you can¡¯t afford the bigger shrimps and crabs. ¡± Without lifting her chin, Liberty carried on feeding her son while reminding Hank in a t tone, ¡°I told you that you should be paying for the groceries and cooking for your mother and sister. You¡¯d have to pay me two hundred bucks for thebor cost if you want me to do it. ¡°I don¡¯t owe you anything. Yet, I have to cook for you and receive nothing but criticisms and lectures in return. ¡± Liberty had to endure the thankless tasks in the past. Hank was speechless. By the looks of Hank, Chelsea knew that Liberty was telling the truth. She shamefully returned to her seat on the sofa. Still, she could not bite her tongue and reproached Liberty, ¡°You and Hank are husband and wife. How can you keep count and separate the tasks? Besides, my mom and I are your inws. You married into our family, so you¡¯re part of the family too. Why are you charging Hank to cook for your family? ¡°Hank might as well take us out to eat. At least, we get better food. ¡± Liberty raised her chin to nce at her husband and sister-inw before focusing back on feeding her son. ¡°That¡¯s what going halves is about. We handle our own stuff, so nobody owes anyone anything. ¡± The Browns were speechless. They wanted Hank to propose going halves in expenses and not in household affairs. However, Liberty seemed to take it one step too far. They had nothing to say as Hank brought up the whole idea in the first ce. ¡°Of course, you could ask Hank to take you to have meals at some hotel when youe next time if you don¡¯t want to pay me for thebor cost. Saves me the trouble. ¡± Waiting on this disgusting family was thest thing Liberty wanted to do. Hank scowled at his wife for a while before deciding against dwelling on the subject. He turned to his mother and sister and said, ¡°Mom, Chelsea, let¡¯s eat. ¡± He went straight to the kitchen and brought out the dishes Liberty made to put on the dinner table. It was a te of shrimps, a te of crabs, and no vegetables. Hank asked Liberty, ¡°Why aren¡¯t there any vegetables?¡± ¡°You gave me three hundred dors to get seafood. There¡¯s no extra for vegetables. ¡± Hank was lost for words. He usually fussed over every dime when she asked him for an allowance. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. For every extra dor she spent, he refused to let it go and criticized her for squandering money. Now it was Liberty¡¯s turn to go through every expense with a fineb. She would only spend as much as he had given her without putting in extra money. ¡°It¡¯s fine, Hank. Your sister and I don¡¯t like to eat vegetables. The shrimps and crabs would do. ¡± Seeing that things were getting heated, Mrs. Brown quickly smoothed things over. Hank took a few breaths to calm himself down before returning to the kitchen to ce the roasted potatoes onto three tes. He then put the baking tray in the sink and turned on the tap to soak the tray before bringing out the tes of roasted potatoes. ¡°It¡¯s time to eat, Liberty. ¡± Mrs. Brown called Liberty out of courtesy while Chelsea and Hank took their seats at the dinner table. ¡°Go ahead with dinner. I¡¯ll eat after I¡¯m done feeding Sonny,¡± Liberty replied. This was her day-to-day routine. Ever since she had Sonny, the Browns would have their fill while she could only eat after feeding the child. Serenity would leave Liberty some food when the former was still living here. Otherwise, there would not be any leftovers for Liberty by the time she was done feeding her son. Chapter 318 Chapter 318 Chapter 318 Serenity was a fast eater. She would finish her meal quickly and take over Liberty¡¯s tasks so Liberty could eat. As for the inws, they were only concerned about filling their own bellies. They did not care about Liberty. It was as though Liberty would not feel hungry. ¡°Mom, have some shrimp. ¡± Hank helped his mom to a few shrimps before saying to his sister, ¡°Have some more, Chelsea. They¡¯re all your favorites. ¡± Feasting on the crab, Chelsea uttered, ¡°We didn¡¯t get the skan King Crabs this time. These crabs are tiny. They don¡¯t have much meat. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. I don¡¯t get much taste out of them. ¡± The disdain in her voice was apparent. Hank fell silent for a while before responding, ¡°I¡¯ll take you out to a fancy hotel next time. ¡± ¡°Hotel food is expensive. Your money doesn¡¯t grow on trees. Just wire me the cash next time. I¡¯ll buy the food for Liberty to cook. ¡± Chelsea made it out as if she was doing her brother a favor. ¡°Sounds good. ¡± Since Hank only had to give a bit of money to Liberty forbor, he should leave the shopping to his sister. Of course, he would give his sister a lot more money to buy groceries. His sister loved seafood, always demanding to eat that every time she visited. Seafood was expensive. Three hundred bucks would not cut it if he were to pay his sister for the purchase. The Browns enjoyed dinner with gusto. Although the shrimps and crabs were tiny, Liberty was a great cook. Truth be told, Liberty and her sister had magic hands to make every food taste good. The family soon finished dinner, wiping the tes of seafood clean. They left nothing for Liberty. Mrs. Brown put down her cutleries and contentedly wiped her mouth with a napkin. She asked, ¡°What is Liberty going to eat since we finished the food?¡± She then turned to Liberty and said, ¡°Liberty, we identally finished the food. Cook yourself an egg or somethingter. ¡± Without lifting her head, Liberty answered as if she was used to it, ¡°Got it. ¡± Feeling full, Sonny kept his mouth close to any more food fed to him. Liberty coaxed him to have some more, but the little man covered his mouth, refusing to eat another bite. ¡°Are you full, Sonny?¡± Sonny rubbed his belly and replied innocently, Mama, I full. ¡± ¡±Liberty stroked his belly with a tender smile. ¡°I see. Sonny has had enough. Why don¡¯t you y over there for a while? Mama is going to eat now. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± As Liberty rose to her feet, she told Hank, ¡°Watch Sonny. ¡± Without a word, Hank approached and picked Sonny up so Sonny could enjoy ying with the toy in his arms. Chelsea cleared the dinner table and entered the kitchen right behind Liberty. Spotting the baking tray soaking in the sink, Chelsea got an idea of what was going on and felt smug. Well, that was what Liberty got for being arrogant. There was no food for her. Liberty deserved to starve to death. Still, Chelsea said, ¡°Why aren¡¯t there any more potatoes? Hank should¡¯ve left some for you. ¡± Chelsea put down the dirty dishes, intending to let Liberty wash them up. On second thought, she decided to do it herself. Chelsea added. ¡°But you¡¯re fat. It won¡¯t kill you to skip a meal. It¡¯s time you go on a diet. ¡± Ignoring Chelsea, Liberty washed her son¡¯s te before moving toward the stove. She opened the oven and retrieved a te of potatoes, a te of shrimps and crabs, and a te of greens. Chapter 319 Chapter 319 Chapter 319 The vegetables were leftovers from yesterday. Liberty kept them in the fridge, but the vegetables were only enough for one person. Since Liberty bought the vegetables with her money, she was not going to share them with the Browns. Chelsea was stunned. The fat cow left herself some food beforehand so she would not go hungry. Liberty carried the food out and sat down at the dinner table. She leisurely enjoyed her dinner. Worried that her sister might be picked on, Serenity found the time out of her busy schedule to call Liberty. ¡°Did they gang up on you, Liberty?¡± ¡°I have a history of chasing Hank down five blocks with a kitchen knife. The worst they can do is get into a tiff with me. A woman won¡¯t tolerate her husband and his family¡¯s unreasonable behavior when she stops caring for her husband. ¡± Serenity was relieved to hear that. ¡°Have you eaten, Liberty?¡± ¡°I¡¯m having dinner now. Have you?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll eat after I¡¯m done with work. I should get back to it, Liberty. ¡± ¡°Alright. ¡± Liberty knew that this was one of her sister¡¯s busiest hours. After the phone call, Liberty carried on with her dinner. Liberty finished her meal by the time Chelsea came out of the kitchen after doing the dishes. Since having a child, Liberty became a fast eater. ¡°Hank, I need to talk to you about something. ¡± Chelsea went over and sat next to her brother. She whispered, ¡°Liberty gave something to Serenity before you came home. It was a big bag. Can you check if Liberty took something from your house? ¡°Did you buy anything good and keep it in the house? I¡¯m guessing it¡¯s a bag of food. ¡± Hank frowned, not liking the idea that Liberty gave Serenity something from the house. Hearing that it was food, Hank eased the tension between his brows. He replied, ¡°I don¡¯t buy groceries, so it¡¯s not my stuff. ¡± ¡°I see. That¡¯s good. You must ask back for it if Serenity took something that¡¯s yours. Don¡¯t let people take advantage of you. ¡± ¡°I won¡¯t let that happen, Chelsea. What brings you and Mom to the city? Why didn¡¯t you bring Lucas along?¡± Hank asked his sister the purpose of her trip. ¡°Lucas has got the flu. It¡¯s viral flu. It took four days before the fever went down, but he¡¯s still coughing. Mom and Dad were worried Sonny might catch it, so they told me not to bring Lucas here. ¡± Chelsea added, ¡°Dad is taking care of Lucas at home. I¡¯m here to ask you about the thing we discussed before. I need you to put my name on the title deed so my eldest two can have their education in the city. You live in a catchment area with good schools. ¡°Have you given much thought to it? Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t take your house from you. The house may be transferred to my name, but you¡¯ll still be living in it. I¡¯m just trying to provide better education to your niece and nephew. I¡¯ll return the house to you when they apply for college elsewhere. ¡± Chelsea spoke in a hushed tone, ¡°Since you and your brother¨Cinw have to work, you guys can¡¯t do school runs. We¡¯ll pick the children up to stay at home on the weekends and send them back here on Sunday nights. ¡°You¡¯re busy with work. Have you talked to Liberty about cooking and sending the children to and fro school? ¡°Tell her that she¡¯s not doing it for nothing. I¡¯ll give her a thousand bucks a month. She can tutor my kids with their homework too. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Your niece has good days and bad days with her academic performance. She¡¯ll do better in her schoolwork if there¡¯s someone tutoring her. It¡¯ll help her get into a better school. ¡± Chelsea might not be able to stand her sister¨Cinw, but she had to admit that Liberty was a college graduate. Liberty was a good candidate to tutor elementary and secondary school students. If the Browns did not have Liberty under their thumbs, thetter probably would not have ended up this way. Chapter 320 Chapter 320 Chapter 320 Although Chelsea had a clear idea of what was going on, she did not do right by Liberty. No matter how highly educated a woman was, she would be bound by marriage and a rtionship once she walked down the aisle and had children. Anyone would hate to be in the woman¡¯s shoes. ¡°I have talked to Liberty about it, Chelsea. She refuses to help. ¡± It was not something Hank could promise to make happen. Since the case of domestic violence, the husband and wife had not kissed and made up. Since Hank had Jessica, the only thing on his mind was to keep his lover happy while the hag at home was not worth his time. Liberty seemed to have grown a spine too. She used to back down but refused to do that now. The couple¡¯s marriage came to a standstill. They lived together but slept in separate rooms. They went on with their own lives. The couple did not talk to each other unless it was about the child. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Why can¡¯t she help out on this tiny matter? I¡¯m not asking her to do it for free. I¡¯m paying her a thousand dors a month. She has no ie, so a thousand bucks should be a lot to her. ¡± Chelsea would not fork out a dime if she had not aggravated the fight between her brother and his wife, bringing more tension into the rtionship. ¡°I was willing to give her an extra thousand and five hundred dors for living expenses, but she still refused to budge. The name transfer on the title deed is no issue. You¡¯re my sister. We have the same mother. I trust you. I bought the house before marriage, and I¡¯m still paying for the monthly mortgage. ¡°Liberty took care of the renovation costs. She can¡¯t do anything if I want to transfer the house to your name. ¡± Sure, Liberty said Hank should pay her back for the renovation before he could give the house to his sister. However, Hank already told her that it was not happening. She could forget him returning her a dime. She was weed to remove the bricks in the wall for all he cared. Chelsea said, ¡°What¡¯s the point of you transferring the house to me if there¡¯s no one to do school runs, cook, and tutor the kids?¡± ¡°How about you quit your job and look after the children at home? My brother¨Cinw has a high ie. He can support you financially. ¡± Hank suggested it to his sister. Rolling her eyes, Chelsea replied, ¡°I work for a big corporation. It¡¯ll be a waste to quit my job. ¡± Besides, Chelsea would turn into the next Liberty if she were to be a full¨Ctime housewife. Chelsea was not that silly to quit her job and be a homemaker. She had been working in herpany for many years and earned a good sry. Her parents would chip in with the household expenses too. Chelsea and her husband rarely spent much on household expenses. She was free to buy clothes and skincare products without worrying about money. Her husband might be good to her at first if she were to quit her job and stay at home without an ie, but would itst? Her brother was a prime example. Hank was so good to Liberty and generous with his money when she first became a housewife. What about now? ¡°Hank, have a talk with Liberty tonight. Be nice to her about it. ¡± She kept her voice down as she added, ¡°I¡¯m on your side, but frankly, you were at fault thest time. Plus, you¡¯re going out with¡­¡± Chapter 321 Chapter 321 Chapter 321 Chelsea lowered her voice even further. ¡°Spend some money to buy a small gift for her. Everything will be solved if you coax her. ¡°In any case, she¡¯s still Sonny¡¯s mother. For Sonny¡¯s sake, and since your niece and nephew need someone to take care of them, bow your head and coax her. You¡¯re a man, so you should be flexible. ¡± Olivia leaned in and picked up where Chelsea left off, whispering to her son, ¡°Hank, for Sonny¡¯s sake, you two still have to continue being together. Listen to your sister and buy some gifts for Liberty to coax her. ¡°Think about how well she took care of you before, and look at how you are now. It¡¯s not like you¡¯ll suffer if you bow your head a little. ¡± When Olivia came over this time and saw that her son could not afford to put on airs as the head of the family to oppress her daughter¨Cinw, she felt very distressed on behalf of her son. However, this was a result of the instigation by her daughter and her. If they had not instigated her son to split household costs with Liberty, Liberty would not be so strict and stingy with them. ¡°How about your dad and Ie over and stay here with you for the time being to help pick up the children?¡± Olivia added, ¡°By then, Sonny will be in preschool, so I can pick up and drop him off, and Liberty can go to work. ¡± Chelsea curled her lips and said, ¡°Go to work? She should have a second child when Sonny goes to preschool. The Brown family has always had a few sons. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. I have Hank as my only brother. I can¡¯t have another little brother even if I wanted one. ¡°Sonny doesn¡¯t have any siblings yet. Hank, you have to consider having a second child. If you want a second child with Liberty, you have to start trying now so the child is born next year when Sonny starts preschool. ¡± Chelsea did not want to let Liberty go to work. That woman was rather capable before she married. If she returned to the workce, she would soon regain the confidence she had before her marriage. She would then not let herself be trampled underfoot by them anymore. Letting Liberty have a second child was the best solution. They would continue to use children to drag her down. ¡°Mom, you and Dad are already old. It¡¯s tiring enough for you two to help me take care of Lucas. How can I let you continue to suffer? Just let Hank coax Liberty and convince her to help. It¡¯ll save so much work. ¡± Olivia thought about it and said, ¡°It¡¯ll be great if Liberty is willing. Hank, your sister is right. You two should consider having a second child. Have a few more sons. Our family is still a little short of male children. ¡± After a pause, she said in a low voice, ¡°The woman you¡¯re keeping outside can¡¯tpare to Liberty. I think that Jessica girl is only after your money. ¡® Olivia knew that someone of Jessica¡¯s temper was not easy to mess with. She would not be willing to work hard withoutining like Liberty. In the end, it was Liberty who had feelings for Hank. That was why she was willing to be the woman behind Hank and work hard for this small family over the years. ¡°No matter how good a lover is, if she bes your wife, she¡¯ll be like how Liberty is now. ¡± Olivia earnestly advised her son, ¡°If you give Liberty money for her to work up and regain her slim figure, as well as buy her a lot of expensive skin care products and beautiful clothes for her to wear, she won¡¯t lose to Jessica at all. ¡± ¡°Mom, don¡¯t mention Jessica at home. ¡± Hank could not stand to listen to his mother¡¯s advice. He hated Liberty now. However, he endured it for the sake of his son. ¡®When my son goes to preschool next year, I¡¯ll kick Liberty out and divorce her!¡® ¡°I¡¯ll listen to you guys. I¡¯ll buy her a small gift to coax her when I get off work tonight and bring it up to her again. As for a second child, I can have one with Jessica instead. ¡± Hank did not n to have a second child with Liberty. He was preupied with how to win over Jessica. Every day, he could see her and touch her, but he could not go all the way with her. It was no wonder that he felt antsy. Liberty came out of the kitchen. The conversation among the three dropped off instantly. Hank put his son down, got up, and said to Liberty, ¡°I¡¯ll go back to the office to work overtime. ¡± Chapter 322 Chapter 322 Chapter 322 Then, Hank said to his mother, ¡°Mom, go shopping with Chelsea. If you see anything you like, just buy it. ¡± He took out his phone and transferred five thousand to his mother for her shopping spree. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll shop with your sisterter and buy some new clothes. Hurry back to work and remember toe home early afterward. ¡± Olivia sent her son out and winked at him to remind him to buy some gifts for Liberty when he got off work. Liberty pushed the stroller over and ced her son into it before saying faintly, ¡°I¡¯ll take Sonny downstairs for a stroll. ¡± ¡°Go ahead,¡± said Olivia, smiling lovingly. Liberty immediately put her guard up. ¡®If my mother¨Cinw is acting like that, she must be nning something against me. More urately, my mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw are trying to trouble me again, right? ¡®No matter what they ask, I won¡¯t agree. ¡® With that thought, Liberty could not be bothered to deal with them anymore and pushed the stroller out of the house. On the other hand, Serenity finished working and had dinner. Jasmine went home first, so Serenity packed up the crafts she had done and called the courier company toe and collect them. After shipping out all the crafts scheduled for today, she closed up the shop early tonight before it was eleven o¡¯clock. Zachary sent her the evidence of Hank¡¯s infidelity at noon, which helped the sisters a lot. Serenity felt that she had to thank him again, so she decided to buy two new shirts for him. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. This time, she intended to buy him two designer suits. With a handsome face like his, wearing designer suits would make him even more dashing. When her husband received praises for being handsome, as his wife, it would naturally make her look good as well. Serenity closed the store and drove off. As she arrived at a clothing store of a well¨Cknown brand, she found a spot to park and sent a message to Zachary while getting out of the car. Zachary was still discussing business with clients at Wiltspoon Hotel when he received the message from Serenity. His expression did not change, but if one paid attention, one would notice that his lips curled up when he read the message. His mood was obviously much happier. Serenity: [I¡¯ll give you a new present tonight. ] What present would she prepare for him? Zachary was looking forward to it. It was easy to buy clothes for Zachary since she knew his size. She just had to choose clothes that were ck in color. Soon, Serenity came out of the shop with several bags in her hands. Just as she was leaving, she unexpectedly saw her mother¨Cinw, Tania. Tania was walking and talking with her friend. Perhaps she felt Serenity¡¯s gaze on her, so she turned to look at Serenity. Serenity smiled and went forward to greet her mother¨Cinw. However, the moment she opened her mouth, Tania already took her friend¡¯s hand and walked away before Serenity could call out to her. Tania did not look at Serenity and acted as if she did not know thetter at all. Serenity¡¯s words were stuck in her throat. She stood at where she was while watching her mother¨Cinw walk away. When Tania¡¯s friend turned around for a double take, Serenity quickly pretended to look somewhere else before lifting her feet and walked away. ¡°Tania, was that girl we saw earlier smiling at us? Do you know her?¡± Chapter 323 Chapter 323 Chapter 323 Tania also turned to look at Serenity, who now already had her back to them. ¡°Was she smiling at us? I don¡¯t know her. ¡± ¡°Oh, maybe it was just my imagination, and it wasn¡¯t us who she was smiling at. ¡± Tania¡¯s friend did not think much about it. She turned around again and saw that Serenity had already walked away. She said with a smile, ¡°I must¡¯ve really gotten the wrong idea. ¡°That girl was quite pretty and bore a good mien. I couldn¡¯t tell which family she¡¯s from, so I thought she was someone you knew. ¡± The friend teased Tania, ¡°All thedies in Wiltspoon will smile at you when they see you. ¡° Tania had three sons. The most famous one was her eldest, who was the head of York Corporation. In the York family, he was the most important person after Old Mrs. York. All the men in the York family were extraordinary. Excluding the youngest two, one of whom was still in high school while the other had just reached adulthood and was not suitable for marriage, the other seven in their generation were all of marriageable age. The York family was the richest in Wiltspoon. They were true nobility. Every woman wanted to marry into the York family and be one of them Mrs. Yorks. Therefore, Tania and her two sisters¨Cinw were the most popr noblewomen in high society. All the families with daughters of marriageable age tried their best to please Tania and her two sisters inws, hoping to be inws with them. Taniaughed softly. ¡°There¡¯s no point smiling at me. Our family is open¨Cminded, so when ites to our children¡¯s marriage, we can only offer advice. We won¡¯t make the decision for them. As long as the woman¡¯s character is good, we will agree to whoever they like. ¡± She did not like her eldest daughter¨Cinw, Serenity, but she knew Serenity had a good character. Since her eldest son agreed to marry Serenity, as a mother, she would not nag her son even if she did not like Serenity. She did notin about her son¡¯s marriage to her mother¨Cinw either. She did not even badmouth Serenity, so how would shement anything about her mother¨Cinw, who had brought up her eldest son. Old Mrs. York cared deeply for her grandchildren. Moreover, Tania had lived as Old Mrs. York¡¯s daughter¨Cinw for decades, so she believed in the old woman¡¯s judgment. Tania had not had any more encounters with Serenity since the previous meal. However, she had been secretly observing Serenity¡¯s actions and conduct. She ignored Serenity and pretended not to know her because Zachary said he wanted to examine Serenity¡¯s character and see whether she was worthy to spend the rest of his life with. He did not announce he was husband and wife with Serenity. Secondly, Tania had not fully epted Serenity as her daughter¨Cinw, so she pretended not to know thetter. Serenity was sensible and did not pester Tania, and quickly left instead. ¡°That¡¯s true. The elders in the York family are all open¨Cminded. That¡¯s exactly the reason those nobledies want to marry into your family. None of them are short of money, but you elders are open -minded, your family is exceptional, and all the men in your family are giants among men. No matter who they marry in the family, their happiness would be enough to make others envy. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s a shame I don¡¯t have a daughter. Like you, I only gave birth to sons. I hope I¡¯ll have a granddaughter in the future. ¡± Tania¡¯s friend also wanted to be inws with the York family. Unfortunately, her womb disappointed her and did not give her a girl. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Otherwise, with Tania¡¯s friendship and if she had a daughter, the girl would definitely be childhood friends with Zachary. ¡°I look forward to having a granddaughter in the future too. There are only sons in the family. Boys are such a headache. They¡¯re not as considerate as girls. ¡± Tania did not have a daughter, so she also wanted a granddaughter in the future. The York family would even give a reward to whoever had a daughter. Old Mrs. York said she would award five hundred million to the couple who gave birth to a girl. If their womb managed to produce more daughters, they would be incredibly wealthy. The two chatted about their children as they walked. After Serenity walked away and looked back at her mother¨Cinw, she saw that Tania had already left with her friend. She stopped and was silent for a moment before walking back to her car, which was parked at the corner of the street. Since the day the Yorks visited Serenity and Zachary at the newlyweds¡® home, Serenity had sensed that her mother¨Cinw did not like her marriage with Zachary. However, Serenity¡¯s mother -inw was cultured, so even if she did not like Serenity, she was still polite and did not make things hard for her daughter¨Cinw. She had at least maintained a cordial rtionship. Chapter 324 Chapter 324 Chapter 324 Serenity understood why her mother¨Cinw pretended not to know her and did not take it to heart. After walking back to her parking spot, she unlocked the car and ced the clothes she bought for Zachary on the passenger seat before driving away. A short whileter, she arrived at Brynfield. Zachary had yet to return, so she fiddled with her small garden on the balcony. The roses were blooming in overabundance, so she took a pair of scissors to cut a few off. However, she was reluctant to throw them away, so she took them back to the hall to trim them and arranged them into a vase. Ring ring ring¡­ Her cell phone rang. She answered and it was from her neighbor at the store. It was inconvenient to take the pets with her since she was going to shop for Zachary¡¯s clothes, so she asked the neighbor to look after the pets for her. ¡°Mr. Charles, I¡¯m so sorry. Ipletely forgot. I¡¯ll go over and pick them up now. ¡± Serenity would have forgotten about the pets if she had not received the call. Well, she was too busy and had just started having pets. She had not gotten used to it, so she forgot about the dog and two cats. ¡°I¡¯ve brought the pets to the entrance of your neighborhood for you. You can juste out and fetch them from here. ¡°I figured you forgot about them since you didn¡¯te back to pick them up after so long. I had nothing to do anyway, so I brought them to you,¡± said Mr. Charles. Charles was the neighbor who thought he was good at reading faces after reading a few books on the subject. He thought Serenity had a face that spoke of wealth, and she was someone who would go through hardships before attaining a smooth life. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. In the future, she would no longer be in the same circle as them. Since his wife and him took over a small store in front of Wiltspoon School, he had never had a problem with Serenity and the others. In his eyes, Jasmine was also destined for a life of riches. Of course, with the Sox family¡¯s current fortune, Jasmine was already considered rich. ¡°I¡¯ll be right out. ¡± Serenity was grateful and embarrassed. After hastily replying to him, she quickly hung up the phone and went outside. Bam. It was only after closing the door that she realized something. In her haste to pick up her pets, she forgot to take her house keys. ¡®Oh no, I won¡¯t be able to get into the houseter. ¡® She hurriedly looked at the time. ¡®It¡¯s already nine o¡¯clock. I¡¯ll call Zacharyter and ask what time he finishes work. If he¡¯s working untilte at night, I¡¯ll take a cab with the pets and get the keys from him. ¡® Serenity quickly ran to the entrance of the neighborhood and saw Charles holding her pet dog and carrying the cat carrier. ¡°Mr. Charles. ¡± She walked over and smiled in embarrassment. ¡± I¡¯m so sorry, Mr. Charles. I forgot about them and troubled you toe all the way here. ¡± Charles smiled and handed the leash and cat carrier over to her. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I had nothing to do anyway, so no harm done. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Charles. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re wee. Well, I¡¯ll go back now. ¡± Charles did not want to stay long. Chapter 325 Chapter 325 Chapter 325 Since Charles said so, Serenity could only say, (( Drive safe then, Mr. Charles. ¡± Charles rode a pedicab here. He smiled, waved at Serenity, and rode away. After he left, Serenity called Zachary. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Zachary said in a low voice. ¡°Mr. York, are you getting off work soon?¡± Zachary was silent, but he thought, ¡®Does she miss me?¡® However, he instantly scrapped that answer. There was no way she would miss him. He had be more and more oversensitivetely. ¡°Why?¡± He did not give her a direct answer. He wanted to know the reason she was asking before he answered. ¡°Um, I came out in a hurry and closed the door, but I forgot to bring my keys, so I can¡¯t get back in. If you¡¯re still working overtime, I¡¯ll take a cab to yourpany to get the keys now, but if you¡¯re getting off work soon, I¡¯ll wait at the door. ¡± Zachary thought about it and said, ¡°I¡¯lle home now. You don¡¯t have to take a cab here. ¡± ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll wait for you in front of the house. ¡± He hummed and hung up the phone. When Josh heard Zachary, he knew he had to continue to negotiate business with the client on his boss¡¯s behalf again. Before Zachary could speak, Josh said considerately, ¡°Go ahead. I¡¯ll handle things here. ¡± Zachary patted his friend¡¯s shoulder and waited for the client to return from the washroom so he could apologize and excuse himself due to an urgent matter. After getting the client¡¯s understanding, he left Wiltspoon Hotel with his entourage of bodyguards. Josh thought, ¡®If my family sets up a blind date for me in the future, I¡¯ll definitely meet the woman. Maybe we¡¯ll click instantly and I¡¯ll get married in a sh just like my boss did. ¡®Once I have a wife, I can be like my boss. If my wife calls, I can drop everything and rush home to apany my wife. ¡°The world is important, but a wife is the most important of all!¡® Serenity did not have to wait long for Zachary. ¡°Did you take them for a walk and forget the keys?¡± Zachary asked his wife while pulling out the keys to open the door. ¡°No, I closed up the store early tonight and went shopping. It was inconvenient to bring them along, so I entrusted them to Mr. Charles. I thought of picking them up after shopping, but I forgot about them. Fortunately, Mr. Charles sent them here to me. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to keep him waiting, so I left in a hurry and closed the door behind me. I forgot to bring the keys and got locked out instead. ¡± Serenity smiled in embarrassment. ¡°This happened to me before. I only realized I forgot my keys after I closed the door. Fortunately, my sister is often home, so she¡¯ll open the door for me after I knock a few times. ¡± Now that the couple lived together, she could only wait for Zachary toe back from work to open the door for her. ¡°I think many people have experienced that before. ¡± Zachary helped carry the cat cage into the house. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. He once again reminded Serenity, ¡°Make sure you are a good owner. If I see them poop all over the ce, you¡¯ll never have a pet again as long as you¡¯re my wife. ¡± Serenity looked astonished, but she quickly assured him, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t let them poop everywhere. I¡¯ll definitely clean up on time and make sure the house is always clean. ¡± Nana had mentioned to her that Zachary was a bit of a clean freak. After settling the pets in, Serenity washed her hands before picking up the bag she had ced on the sofa, and handed it to Zachary. ¡°What is it?¡± Chapter 326 Chapter 326 Chapter 326 ¡°A surprise for you. ¡± Zachary took the bag and looked at it. ¡°More clothes?¡± He took out the clothes and looked at them. This time, she was much more generous. All of them were branded goods. ¡°I have no experience in giving gifts to men, so I can¡®t prepare a big surprise. Small surprises are all I can do. The clothes I gave youst time weren¡®t expensive. They were just a thousand or so each set, but this time, I bought you something branded. Each set costs more than ten thousand dors. ¡°Wearing it is like being decked out in money. Isn¡®t it a surprise? Even at my age, I could never bring myself to wear such expensive clothes. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°With your temperament and financial ability, it really is a surprise that you¡®re willing to buy such expensive clothes for me. ¡± These new sets were many times better than the clothes she gifted himst time. Yes, it was a pleasant surprise indeed. ¡°Thank you for helping my sister collect the evidence of Hank¡®s infidelity. ¡± ¡°Don¡®t mention it. Your sister is my sister. It¡®s only natural that I¡®ll help my sister, but you went out of your way to give me clothes as a thank you gift. It was no wonder she suddenly bought clothes for him again. It turned out to be a gift of gratitude for his help. She treated him with utmost courtesy and did not consider him as family. If he helped her, she would repay him in other ways since she did not want to owe him a favor. Zachary did not know whether tough or cry when he realized this. If she did this when they just got their marriage license, he would definitely think she was being tactful. However, now, he felt she was rather distant. She did not let him into her world. Then again, he could not me her. He was the one who asked her to sign the agreement. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡°My sister is always reminding me to be kinder and better to you. Since I bought you some new clothes, you have to put in a good word for me when my sister mentions it again next time. ¡± Zachary could not help butugh. ¡°Sure. If I see your sister in the future, I¡®ll tell her that everything I wear was bought by you. If you buy underwear for me too, I can tell her that my whole outfit from head to toe was packaged by you. ¡± ¡°Do you need underwear? What color do you like? I already bought you suits that cost more than ten thousand each, so I don¡®t mind buying you a few sets of underwear. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Are you too embarrassed to tell me? That¡®s fine. If you let me look at your closet, I¡®ll know what your favorite type¨Cuh, I mean color, is. ¡± Zachary remained silent. By observing her anticipation, he knew she was curious about everything in his room. They had been married for a while, but he did not allow her to enter his room, so it was only natural for her to be curious. ¡°Any color is fine as long as it¡®s not red. ¡± Zachary answered willingly lest she insisted on seeing what color of underwear he wore. ¡°Oh, okay. I¡®ll go shopping again when I¡®m free and buy you underwear with a variety of colors. That way, you can wear a different color every day. ¡± Zachary¡®s mouth twitched. No one could tell what kind of underwear he was wearing anyway. What was the point of wearing different colors every day? Serenity stopped talking about underwear and turned around to tease the pets. She did not mention the encounter with her mother¨Cinw near the shop to Zachary either. Although Serenity kept mum about it, Tania felt uneasy and finally called her eldest son to ask a few vague questions. Zachary was confused and could not figure out what his mother was trying to ask. Tania, however, knew from her son¡®s responses that Serenity had not spoken ill of her to him. Her face reddened in shame at her own wild suspicions. Chapter 327 Chapter 327 Chapter 327 After the mother and son ended their call, Zachary frowned and thought about it. He then went ahead and asked thedy in front of him who was holding her kitty on the balcony swing. ¡°Did you meet my mom without my knowledge?¡± Serenity froze. She had not mentioned the encounter with her mother-inw to him. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. How did he know? Zachary walked up to her and stood opposite her. His burning dark eyes locked on her pretty face, and he asked again, ¡°Did you meet my mom today?¡°. Serenity saw he was still holding his cell phone and thought her mother¨Cinw had called toin to him about her, so she quickly exined, ¡°I bumped into your mom when I was buying clothes for you. I wanted to greet her, but maybe she didn¡®t recognize me. She walked away with her friend whileughing and talking, so I didn¡®t greet her. ¡± Zachary was a smart person. Tania was his mother. Althoughhe was brought up by his grandparents, he did not alienate his parents. His rtionship with his parents was cordial too. He knew his mother very well. His mother definitely did not want people to know that Serenity was her daughter¨Cinw. It was to help him hide the fact that he was married, and also because she was not entirely pleased about Serenity. She had nothing against Serenity as a person, but she felt that the gap between Serenity¡®s background and her son was toorge. His mother felt heartbroken for him. His grandmother had nine grandsons, but her son had to be the one who married Serenity as a show of gratitude. After a moment¡®s silence, Zachary said, ¡°My mom is a little nearsighted, but she doesn¡®t like to wear sses. Even if she might see people she knows when she¡®s out, she always looks at others for cues. Unless she¡®s very familiar with the person, she¡®ll just walk by and pretend she doesn¡®t know them because she doesn¡®t dare to greet them. Serenity understood now. ¡°I see. It¡®s no wonder she saw me but quickly pretended not to know me earlier. I couldn¡®t bring myself to greet her either because I was afraid of making things awkward. ¡°I¡®ll tell Mom to wear sses when she goes out shopping next time, lest something like this happens again. She thought about it when she got home and felt that the person looked like you, so she called to ask me. I was confused and figured that you two might have met. ¡± ¡°You can tell her to wear contact lenses if she feels ufortable wearing sses. ¡± Zachary hummed. Seeing that she adored the pets, he looked at the time and asked her, ¡°Do you want to take them downstairs and have a stroll around the neighborhood? We¡®re usually busy and only have time to walk them when we get home at night. ¡± ¡°Are you apanying me?¡± Zachary¡®s gaze softened slightly. ¡°Since I proposed it, I¡®ll y my part as a gentleman to walk with you. ¡± Serenityughed and picked up the little kittens. The kittens were still unfamiliar with the new environment, so the couple did not bring them out. They only brought the dog downstairs for a walk. After moving in, the couple seldom sauntered in the area. It was almost ten at night, but the small garden in themunity was still lively. Many children got carried away with ying and refused to go home, so they had to be coaxed by their parents and carried away. For some kids who were still not old enough to go to preschool, their parents allowed them to continue having fun. The parents felt it was easier to tuck their children into bed if thetter got tired from ying. ¡°How is your sister doing after she got home?¡± Zachary asked about his sister¨Cin¨Cw while walking. ¡°Tell me if you need help. I¡®ll try my best to help you. You don¡®t have to treat me courteously. We¡®re still husband and wife, so your troubles are my troubles. Your sister is also my sister. I have great respect for her. Serenity turned to look at him. Chapter 328 Chapter 328 Chapter 328 The husband and wife did not mention anything about the cold war they had and reconciled in silence. Serenity originally thought of getting through the six months and forgot about it, but she could not help but feel moved by his concern for her. She wanted to break that half¨Cyear agreement. However, she was afraid it was nothing but her own wishful thinking. She feared that if they divorced once the agreement expired and she ended up falling in love with him whereas he did not, she would suffer the pain of losing him and spend a long time forgetting him, all while he lived his new life happily. Falling in love with someone was easy, yet the same could not be said about letting go of someone you love. ¡°Don¡®t worry, my sister and I will definitely ask for your help if we can¡®t solve a problem. ¡± Since he was kind, she would respond in like. She added, ¡°I called my sister when she got home, and she¡®s fine for now. She¡®s good at enduring, so she won¡®t act impulsively if she thinks it¡®s not time yet. Right now, it¡®ll be detrimental for her if she impulsively tears off the fig leaf. For Sonny¡®s sake, her sister went from a walk¨Con actress to a blockbuster movie star in a sh. Her skills were so marvelous that the Brown family could not tell that it was just an act. ¡°Her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw came again, but I don¡®t know why. I¡®ll ask her when I go over to pick Sonny up tomorrow. ¡± Liberty was starting work at Lewis & Co. tomorrow, so Sonny would be sent to the store for Serenity to look after him. Serenity was d she helped take care of her nephew after he was born. The aunt and nephew had a good rtionship, so he was willing to be with her and would not cry for his mommy. ¡°Do you want to hire a nanny to help you take care of Sonny? Boys his age are very active, and you¡®re busy sometimes. If he runs out while you¡®re not careful, the consequences will be unimaginable. ¡± Zachary thought over it well. Serenity considered and said, ¡°Maybe, but not now. I¡®ll make sure to carry him on my back when I¡®m busy and won¡®t let him run around. I¡®ll only hire a nanny if I really can¡®t handle it. I¡®m worried the nanny will take advantage of our inattention to bully the chitd. ¡± Aftering across many news articles about nannies mistreating children when their parents were not at home, Serenity was a little resistant to the idea of hiring a nanny. ¡°You don¡®t have to worry about that. I know a very good nanny. I¡®ll arrange it for you. ¡± Serenity looked at him again andughed. ¡°Mr. York, I suddenly feel like you¡®re superman. It¡®s like there¡®s no problem you can¡®t solve. And you even know a nanny?¡± Zachary said in his heart, I¡®ll be superman for you only. ¡®I wouldn¡®t bother if it were anyone else. ¡® ¡°The nanny of my ninth cousin brother still keeps in touch with our family. She¡®s an excellentdy. She¡®s attentive, kind, highly educated, and has very good morals. All the children raised by her turned out to be exceptional. If you don¡®t mind, I¡®ll talk to my aunt and contact the nanny to ask her toe over and take care of Sonny. ¡± Serenity thought of Rowan. He was indeed a sensible child and was a happy¨Cgo¨Clucky person. He was her favorite out of all her brothers¨Cinw. ¡°All right, you can talk to your aunt and share with me the nanny¡®s number when you get it. I¡®ll contact her and talk to her about the rates. ¡± ¡°Sure. It¡®s a littlete now, so my aunt is probably asleep. Let¡®s not disturb her. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. I¡®ll call her tomorrow instead. ¡± Zachary was in a cheery mood after solving yet another problem for his wife. ¡°I¡®ll pay for the nanny¡®s sry. When she gets acquainted with Sonny, let her stay in our house during the day so she can look after the pets while she¡®s at it. She¡®ll also clean a little. Think of it as hiring a house helper. ¡°Both of us don¡®te home tillte. You¡®ll get tired if you stay upte or wake up early to clean the house. People who are not in the know might think that I¡®m a ve driver for my wife. ¡± Chapter 329 Chapter 329 Chapter 329 Serenity stopped walking. Zachary too. He looked at her deeply and asked, ¡°What¡®s wrong?¡± ¡°I¡®ll pay for the nanny. She¡®s going to be taking care of Sonny, who¡®s my nephew, so I should be the one to pay for it. I can¡®t let you use your money. ¡± It would cost thousands of dors to hire a nanny now. He was already paying for all their living expenses. Serenity felt like she was taking advantage of him. Zachary could not help but reach out and pinch her face. ¡± You are always haggling with me. We¡®re a family now, so why do you have to split hairs over everything? On the day we got our marriage license, I already said that since I married you, I can afford to support you. ¡°Sonny calls me Uncle, and I like that child very much too, so I¡®m willing to pay for a nanny to take care of him. ¡± After a pause, he added softly, ¡°Most importantly, I don¡®t want my wife to be so tired. ¡± . ¡°Pardon?¡± ¡°I said, I¡®ll pay for the nanny. ¡± He was very insistent. Serenity could not win against him. After thinking about it, she said, ¡°All right, you can pay for the nanny. Mr. York, do you have any ns this weekend?¡± ¡°Why?¡± Serenity led the dog and continued to walk forward while asking, ¡°We¡®ve been married for some time, but I haven¡®t been to your old home before. I figured that if you¡®re free this weekend, you could take me back to your old home. ¡± Her inws had seen her, but as a daughter¨Cinw, she had never set foot in her inws¡® home. Even now, she did not know where her inws lived. ¡°Nana¡®s birthday is in half a month, and all of us will go back on that day. I¡®ll take you back and introduce you to them then. You¡®ll be able to meet all our family and friends at once. ¡± ¡°Is it andmark birthday?¡± ¡°No, just close rtives invited for a meal together. ¡± If it were andmark birthday, the family would definitely throw a birthday banquet for Old Mrs. York and invite all the socialites of Wiltspoon. It would be hard to deceive Serenity if that was the case. Since only close rtives were getting together for a dinner to celebrate Nana¡®s birthday, arrangements could be made in advance and the truth could be concealed with some instructions from him. Zachary¡®s view of Serenity had changed significantly. He recognized now that Serenity was not in it for his or his grandmother¡®s money. After observing her for a period of time, he felt that she had a good character, but had not decided whether or not to spend the rest of his life with her. Therefore, he would continue to hide his real identity from her. ¡°That¡®s fine. Let¡®s wait for Nana¡®s birthday and go back together then. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡± Serenity had no problems with his arrangement. The young couple strolled twops around the small garden in the neighborhood before going back. ¡°Do you want to have supper?¡± Serenity asked him out of habit. ¡°No, thank you. ¡± He ate a lot when he was socializing. ¡°Forget it, I won¡®t eat either. Good night, then. ¡± ¡°Good night. ¡± Serenity turned around and went into her room. Zachary stood in ce while he watched her enter her room and close the door behind her before he went back to his room. Once inside, he took the new clothes given to him by Serenity to wash them by hand and dry them with the washing machine. He then hung them out on the balcony. They should be dry by dawn. Chapter 330 Chapter 330 Chapter 330 Hank twisted the door handle but failed to open the door. Liberty had locked the door. He knocked. ¡°Liberty, open up. ¡± Liberty came to open the door, but she blocked the doorway to keep him from entering the room. She asked, ¡°What?¡± ¡°I have something I want to discuss with you. Let me in. ¡± This was originally the couple¡®s master bedroom, but now it was upied by Liberty. Hank was a little displeased, but in order to coax and persuade Liberty to help with the school run for his sister¡®s children, he held back his temper. ¡°Can¡®t it wait till tomorrow? It¡®s alreadyte now. ¡± ¡°It¡®s only 11. I usuallye back during this time after dinner parties. ¡± Liberty guessed that Hank wanted to talk to her about something having to do with her mother¨Cinw and sister inw. She was curious too, so she stepped to the side and said, ¡°Go back to your room to sleep when you¡®re done. ¡± Hank cursed in his heart, ¡®I just couldn¡®t hold it in that night because I drank¡­ Do you really think I wanted to touch you?¡® However, his mouth said, ¡°Wait, I¡®ll go get something. ¡± He turned around and quickly headed to the room where he now slept. He picked up a small brocade box containing a pearl ne he bought specially for Liberty after work earlier. However, it was not an expensive pearl ne. It only cost a couple hundred dors. He then brought the small brocade box into the master bedroom. Serenity sat on the loveseat in the room, waiting for him. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Hank entered the room and went to see his son first. Seeing the little boy sleeping soundly, his heart softened and he leaned down to kiss the boy¡®s cheek. He caressed his son¡®s face before standing up straight and turning around to sit next to Liberty ¡°Honey. ¡± ¡°Say my name. ¡± Liberty corrected his term of address indifferently. She did not want to hear him call her ¡°honey¡± anymore. It made her sick. Hank chuckled sheepishly and handed the small brocade box to her. ¡°Liberty, I apologize to you. I was wrong to hit youst time. No matter what, I shouldn¡®t have gotten violent with you. I know I was wrong. Will you forgive me? ¡°I bought this for you. Open it and see if you like it. ¡± Liberty looked at him and took the brocade box to see what was inside. She took out the pearl ne and looked it over for a while, then put it back into the box and closed it. ¡°Was this ne expensive?¡± ¡°It was quite expensive. I went to a jewelry store to buy it. Goods in jewelry stores are all of high quality and rather expensive. ¡± Libertyughed. ¡®Is he looking down on me for not knowing how to appraise jewelry? ¡®If this pearl ne was sold at a roadside stall, it would be priced at a few dozen at most. If it¡®s sold in arge supermarket or jewelry store, it would cost several hundred dors. In my estimate, this ne cost less than five hundred dors. ¡®His gift to me was no more than five hundred dors. ¡®However, if he¡®s buying it for his lover Jessica, it¡®ll be something no less than five thousand. ¡® Liberty suddenly felt like she was a joke for thinking about him, saving money for him, and helping him manage this family! ¡°Let me put it on for you. ¡± ¡°No need. Just say what you want to say. ¡± Liberty stopped Hank¡®s move to help her put on the ne. Hank smiled sheepishly again and said, ¡°Liberty, my sister came this time to ask about the matter she mentioned to me before. She asked if we had a thought about it. She said we should act early and get it done before the year ends. ¡± ¡°What are you talking about?¡± ¡°Transferring the ownership of our ce to my sister so her children can go to a better school. Also, there¡®s the matter of picking up, dropping off, and cooking for her children. We¡®re all busy at work and have no time. Only you are free at home with Sonny. ¡± Chapter 331 Chapter 331 Chapter 331 ¡°Just give my sister a hand and manage her children¡®s daily meals as well as their to and fro school run. You¡®re cooking regardless if they¡®re eating here anyway, so cooking for two more kids won¡®t make much of a difference. They¡®re still children, so they don¡®t eat that much either. ¡°Think of it as doing me a favor. We¡®ve been married for so many years. You¡®re willing to help me, right?¡± Hank¡®s voice was gentle, and he looked at Liberty when he spoke. He even tried to appeal to her emotions. ¡°My sister won¡®t make you work for nothing. She¡®ll give you a thousand bucks every month, and as I mentionedst time, I¡®d give you another fifteen hundred for living expenses. Including the thousand bucks my sister is giving you, you¡®ll have twenty¨Cfive hundred a month. That¡®s pretty decent. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Liberty wanted tough. She was angered to the point where she could onlyugh at Hank and his sister¡®s thoughts. One thousand dors for her to take the two children to and from school and cook three meals a day for them, on top of tutoring them? ¡°Hank Brown, do you think a thousand dors is a lot?¡± ¡°It doesn¡®t cost you any money to live and eat here. My sister is giving you a thousand for nothing, so you can keep all that for yourself as savings. Isn¡®t that a lot? If you think it¡®s not enough, I¡®ll give you an additional thousand. ¡± Liberty interrupted him and said, ¡°Did I not make myself clearst time? I told you, I won¡®t be responsible for children who do not belong to me. Besides, I have something to tell you too. I also found a job and will be starting tomorrow. ¡°I asked Serenity to help me take care of Sonny. I have to ask my sister to help me with my own son. How would I have the time and leisure to take care of other people¡®s children?¡± Hank¡®s expression darkened upon hearing that. ¡°What do you mean you¡®re going to work? How old is Sonny? He still can¡®t live without his mother. Do I not give you enough food or clothes? Why are you going to work?¡± ¡°I¡®m free to work if I want to, and my sister can help me take care of Sonny. Yes, you don¡®t give me enough food and clothes. I¡®ve had it with you, Hank! Do you really think I can¡®t earn enough money to support myself? ¡°You and your family think all I can do is eat and can¡®t make money, right? Your mother and sister even scolded me, saying I¡®m useless even after studying so much. They said I¡®m useless unless I can earn money! If not for Sonny, do you think I¡®d let you guys step on me and oppress me? ¡°I was really stupid, Hank. I was stupid to believe that you would support me. Heh. Look at my hair. It¡®s still dark and shiny. I don¡®t have a single white hair. I¡®m still young. You haven¡®t supported me for life yet, but you wanted to go Dutch with me after just three years. ¡°You know well enough that I used my savings to renovate this house. You know I¡®m raising the child at home with no source of ie, but you still want to go Dutch with me. Weren¡®t you just trying to force me to go to work? In that case, I¡®ll grant your wish and start working! ¡°I will never believe anything you say anymore for the rest of my life!¡± Hank¡®s expression was dark as he said, ¡°You were the one who forced my hand. You spend money without any restraint¡­. ¡± ¡°What are you talking about? What did I buy with your money? All my skincare products were bought for me by Serenity, and all my jewelry and bags were bought by myself before I got married. When was thest time I bought new clothes since the wedding? ¡°I only bought new clothes for the three of us as a family to leave a good impression on Zacharyst time. I only spent a thousand or so dors, but your family keeps harping about it even now. They say I¡®m spending money indiscriminately and ruining the family. ¡°After the marriage, all of the money I¡®ve spent on was for this small home, you, and Sonny. I scrimp when ites to myself, but I¡®m generous when it¡®s for you and your son. But now you¡®re telling me I spend money without restraint and that has forced you to go Dutch with me to control my spending habits? ¡°Hank Brown, are you blind or is your heart ck? Doesn¡®t it go against your conscience to say such stuff? Was your conscience eaten by a dog?¡± Hank was struck speechless by Liberty¡®s questions. After a long pause, he said, ¡°Liberty, I¡®ll stop going Dutch with you. Don¡®t go to work and take care of Sonny first. You can return to work when he starts preschool. ¡± ¡°I think that it¡®s fine to continue going Dutch. There¡®s no need to stop it. We can just go on like this. You don¡®t have to say anything else either. Even if you give me ten thousand a month for living expenses now, I¡®m still going to work. ¡± She wanted to get a job and make herself financially independent for the purpose of getting custody of her son after the divorce. Never again would she listen to his drivel. Chapter 332 Chapter 332 Chapter 332 Since Hank could not convince Liberty to agree, he lost his patience and asked her grimly, ¡°Where are you working? Whichpany is stupid enough to take you in?¡± Liberty beamed and said, ¡°Lewis and Co. I was hired by Mr. Lewis himself. ¡± Hank was speechless. Lewis and Co. was not a ce he could reach. He thought that if she was working in a smallpany, he could use his connections to stop Liberty from working and she would lose her job again. She would then stay home obediently and take care of the child. He did not expect her to be this capable. She left the workce for more than three years and was as fat as a pig. She no longer had her aura from the past, but still managed to join argepany like Lewis and Co. Furthermore, she was personally hired by Mr. Lewis. He must be a horrible judge of character. Hank ndered Duncan cynically. in his heart. Not even he had the ability to work in Lewis and Co. ¡°Are you done with what you have to say? If you are, please get out. I need to rest since I have to get up early for work tomorrow. ¡± Liberty remembered Duncan saying that she must run fiveps around the small garden in front of the office building every day before she could start work. Ms. Chaplin would monitor her and make sure she finished the fiveps. If she slept poorly, she would not have the energy to work tomorrow. She was afraid she would lose her hard¨Cearned job if she did not perform well on her first day. Hank grunted heavily and walked away. He spent money on a pearl ne for nothing. When he went out, he mmed the room door with a bang. The noise startled his mother who was sleeping in the guest room. Olivia came out wearing a coat and saw her son storming out of the master bedroom. She quickly approached him and asked with concern, ¡°What¡®s wrong, Hank? Did you have another fight with Liberty? Or did she not agree to help your sister pick up the children?¡± Hank softened his expression in front of his mother and said, ¡°Mom, Liberty said she found a job today and will be starting work tomorrow. She¡®s letting Serenity take care of Sonny and can¡®t help Chelsea with her kids¡® schooling transportation. ¡± ¡°Your sister is giving her money, yet she¡®s still unwilling? What do you mean she¡®s going to work? Echoing your sister, it¡®s time for you two to have a second child. Herpany won¡®t want her when she¡®s pregnant anyway. Why waste time now?¡± Hank thought in his heart, ¡®There¡®s no way I¡®ll have a second child with Liberty. ¡®I don¡®t even want to touch her now, and she won¡®t let me touch her anyway. ¡® Of course, he would not tell his mother that. He said, ¡°She probably thinks Chelsea is giving her too little. I didn¡®t even know she had found herself a job because she didn¡®t tell me. If I hadn¡®t discussed this with her, I guess she would¡®ve continued keeping this as a secret. ¡± Hank himself had something to hide from Liberty, but he thought nothing of it. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. However, when Liberty hid something from him, he became angry and upset. Chapter 333 Chapter 333 Chapter 333 Olivia thought about it and said, ¡°I¡®ll talk to her again tomorrow and see if I can talk her out of going to work, but you should give her a little more living expenses in the future. Also, stop going Dutch with her. ¡°I thought that going Dutch would benefit you, but now it seems like there¡®s no advantage. Now, you have to do everything yourself when youe back. When your sister and Ie over, we have to pay Liberty to cook for us too. ¡°You don¡®t seem to be saving a lot of money either. It¡®ll be much easier on you if you stop going Dutch with her. It¡®ll be worth it even if it means having to give her an extra two thousand per month for living expenses. ¡± Hank was silent for a moment and said, ¡°Even if we stop going Dutch, Liberty and I can¡®t go back to how we were before. I¡­ I really have no interest in her anymore. If not for Sonny and Chelsea, I wouldn¡®t have lowered myself to speak to her so humbly. ¡± As soon as he finished speaking, Olivia pped him. She scolded him in a low voice, ¡°You men are all the same. Once you get married, you won¡®t be able to resist the temptation of other women. Do you really think that Yates girl truly loves you? She¡®s only after your status. ¡± ¡°If you were an ordinary employee earning three to five thousand a month, do you think she¡®d take a liking to you? Yes, you¡®re quite handsome. I¡®m very satisfied with your face, but can you make a living out of being attractive? ¡°Girls nowadays are clear¨Cheaded. If you have no money and no status, you¡®ll forever be a bachelor no matter how handsome you are. ¡°You¡®ll regret it if you really split with Liberty. ¡± Hank firmly believed that Jessica was his true love, so he did not listen to a word his mother said. ¡°It¡®ste, Mom. You should rest. I¡®ll talk to Liberty and convince her to help Chelsea pick up the children. ¡± If Liberty refused to help, his house would not have to be transferred to his sister. Speaking of which, did Liberty refuse to help because she did not want him to transfer the house to Chelsea? Well, she was aware that no one else in the family had time to help Chelsea pick up and drop off the children. Hank wanted to go back to the room to question Liberty, but he was worried about quarreling with her again, so he dropped the idea. The night passed without a word. The next day, the sky was gray and drizzly. The chill set in after a light rain. When Serenity walked out of the room and saw Zachary collecting the clothes on the balcony. She went out to look and said, ¡°It¡®s not raining heavily, and there¡®s no wind either. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. The clothes hanging here won¡®t get wet. ¡± Zachary was collecting the clothes he washedst night which he had originally hung out on the small balcony in his room. However, when he woke up in the middle of the night, he realized the weather was windy, so he took the opportunity when Serenity was fast asleep to hang the clothes on therge balcony. Unexpectedly, it rained in the morning and the wind stopped blowing as well. He touched the clothes and felt that they were still damp. It was not dry enough to wear. The washing machine that Sam sent over had a drying function, but even that could not dry wet clothes enough to be worn. ¡°Don¡®t you have other clothes to wear?¡± Serenity asked casually when she saw him like this. ¡°I have many clothes. Even if I don¡®t wash them every day, I have enough clean clothes tost a month. I saw it was raining and was worried the clothes might be sttered by the rain, so I checked if they were. If you say that they won¡®t get wet, I will stop collecting them. ¡± Then, he hung the clothes back up to dry, and asked Serenity as if nothing had happened, ¡°Do you want to make breakfast at home or go out to eat? How about I treat you to breakfast? Call your sister. If Ms. Sox is up this early, you can call her too. ¡± Serenityughed and teased him, ¡°Mr. York, did you dream of winning the lotteryst night? How many millions did you win?¡± Zachary flicked her forehead in amusement. ¡°Do I need to win the lottery to treat you all to breakfast?¡± ¡°I¡®ll call Jasmine and my sister right away. It¡®s rare for you to treat us, so we must take you up on your offer. ¡± Chapter 334 Chapter 334 Chapter 334 Serenity phoned Jasmine with a smile. Jasmineughed on the phone. ¡°Seren, you two finally made up. Mr. York is willing to even treat me to breakfast? I¡®m relieved. I was so worried he thought I was trying to matchmake you. ¡± Shawn was her cousin, but she did not want her best friend and him to be a couple. That was because the Lowe family was not suitable for her best friend. Even though her aunt usually treated Serenity well, if she found out that Shawn had feelings for Serenity, she would instantly turn hostile. Serenity would not have a good life with someone like Jasmine¡®s aunt as her mother¨Cinw, so Jasmine would not help her cousin. When there was an opportunity to be alone with Shawn, she intended to have a proper talk with him. She would tell him to give up on Serenity and stoping to the shop frequently, lest Zachary misunderstood again. After marriage, both men and women had to consider the feelings of their other halves. Regardless if they did nothing wrong, so long as their significant other saw them with another person of the opposite sex, they would get angry. However, nothing would happen as long as they kept their distance. ¡°I¡®ll be right there. ¡± Jasmine chose to take up Zachary¡®s offer over doing business. ¡°By the way, where are we eating? Send me the location and I¡®ll ride my bike there. ¡± Serenity pulled the phone from her ear and asked, ¡°Mr. York, where are we eating?¡± ¡°The buffet restaurant on the first floor of Wiltspoon Hotel has a big breakfast spread. No matter where youe from, you¡®ll find vors from your hometown there. ¡± Serenity told her friend, ¡°The buffet restaurant on the first floor of Wiltspoon Hotel. ¡± ¡°Got it. I¡®ll head there now. ¡± After ending the call with Jasmine, Serenity called her sister and learned that Liberty was up, so she said to Zachary,¡± Mr. York, let¡®s fetch my sister from her ce. ¡± Zachary had no problem with that. Serenity tucked her phone back into her pants pocket and headed down to the living room to get her car keys. She then took her pet cats and dog with her, and waited for Zachary to leave together. Following behind Serenity, Zachary saw her brisk footsteps and could tell that she was obviously in a happy mood. He called her in a low voice, ¡°Serenity. ¡± ¡°Hm?¡± Serenity turned to look at him. ¡°What¡®s up?¡± Zachary¡®s eyes fell on her white and slender hands. Noticing that he was staring at her hands, Serenity lifted them and looked at them. When she did not see anything amiss, she said with augh, ¡°Mr. York, what are you staring at my hands for? If you have something to say, then say it. Don¡®t make me guess. I¡®m too dumb to guess correctly. ¡± Zachary silently cursed in his heart, ¡®She¡®s not dumb at all. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. She¡®s incredibly smart. ¡® ¡°It¡®s nothing. ¡± He wanted to say that they should go to a jewelry store to buy a pair of rings after breakfast. He had not given her any jewelry since they got their marriage license. However, he swallowed the words in his mouth. ¡®She probably won¡®t ept it. ¡® Serenity did not say anything and went into the elevator with the pets first. Zachary paused for a moment. He was cursing himself internally for holding onto his pride which prevented him from saying sweet words. He then pretended as if nothing happened and followed her into the elevator. Chapter 335 Chapter 335 Chapter 335 Serenity would be returning to the store after breakfast while Zachary would be heading to the office. Since their routes were different, the couple drove their own cars separately. They first went to Bright Boulevard to pick Liberty up. They saw Liberty pushing her son out to the entrance of the neighborhood. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Serenity quickly got out and walked toward her sister after pulling the car over by the curb. ¡°Ant Swer. ¡± Sonny stretched his arms out for Serenity to carry him. Serenity bent over and picked him up, rewarding him with two little kisses and that made the little one giggle. When Zachary saw this, he wanted to shrink himself to be a two¨Cyear¨Cold toddler so Serenity would kiss him too. ¡°Why is Sonny up so early today?¡± ¡°I woke him up and fed him milk beforeing out. ¡± Liberty nodded at her brother¨Cinw and greeted him,¡± Zachary. ¡± ¡°Let¡®s get in the car, Liberty. ¡± As Zachary spoke, he stepped forward and loaded the child¡®s stroller into Serenity¡®s car. ¡°Liberty, are you taking public transportation to work?¡± Serenity asked her sister while driving, ¡°Why don¡®t you ride an e¨Cbike? You can stuff it inside Zachary¡®s car. ¡± His car was big, so there was no problem fitting Liberty¡®s small e¨Cbike. ¡°There¡®s not enough time. I¡®ll ride the e¨Cbike to work tomorrow. ¡± Liberty deliberately changed into a more ttering outfit today,pared to the casual outfit she usually had on at home. It had been a long time since she went to work. Now that she was reentering the workforce, she felt a little nervous. ¡°I¡®ll send you to the officeter before heading to the store. ¡± ¡°That works too. ¡± Liberty did not turn down her sister¡®s offer. Serenity asked again about the reason Olivia and Chelsea came over. ¡°Isn¡®t it obvious? It¡®s that thing I told you aboutst time. They wanted me to pick up Chelsea¡®s children as well as cook for and tutor them, but I refused! Since Chelsea gave birth to them, she could take care of them. I don¡¯t have the time to care about her children. Besides, her children are like her. Taking care of them is just a thankless task. ¡± Her decision was made by putting aside her rtionship breakdown with Hank. Even if they were getting along, she did not want to ept this kind of work. She was tired enough taking care of Sonny alone. ¡°Aren¡®t your inws helping with her children¡®s school transportation arrangement? Just let them handle it. ¡± Liberty sneered. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡°Will Chelsea be willing to let her parents take care of them? The two elderly get worked to the bone at home serving the family. All the living expenses that Hank gives them are spent on Chelsea¡®s family instead. ¡± ¡°Only your inws would raise such a daughter. ¡± The whole family were all enablers for that she¨Cdevil. Serenity hoped her sister could get out of the Brown family soon. ¡°Seren, why did Zachary suddenly think of treating us to breakfast today?¡± ¡°Didn¡®t you just find a job? He invited us to breakfast to congratte you on getting a job. You¡®re one step further away from the sea of suffering. We¡®re all happy for you. ¡± Libertyughed, thinking that her brother¨Cinw was too courteous and attentive. ¡°Zachary really is a good man. Seren, you have to¡­¡± ¡°Treat him well, yes. My ears are going to fall off with how many times you tell me that. It¡®s not like I abuse him on a daily basis. I even bought him a couple of new clothesst night. ¡± Serenity suddenly remembered Zachary¡®s little action at home earlier. He would usually not hang his clothes on the main balcony, as if he was afraid she would steal his clothes to sleep with. In short, he held his guard up like she was a thief. However, he hung his clothes on the main balcony to dryst night. It was a little strange. No, it was incredibly strange. If she was not mistaken, the clothes he was checking on earlier were the same ones she bought for himst night. Chapter 336 Chapter 336 Chapter 336 Serenity remembered the brand of the suit she spent over ten thousand dors to buy. There was no mistake. Sheughed to herself. ¡®Zachary must have wanted to wear the new clothes. That¡®s the reason for all those little actions. ¡®It¡®s no wonder Nana said his still waters run deep. He won¡®t throw away the clothes I bought for him. ¡®Sure enough, Nana knows her grandson best. She has aplete grasp over his personality. ¡® When they arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel, Jasmine was already waiting there. The group entered the hotel. The hotel¡®s lobby manager recognized Zachary and put a smile on his face, about to greet him. However, Zachary red eerily at the manager, who was struck speechless. 11 ¡®Did I do something wrong?¡® The manager did not dare to greet or follow Zachary, so he stood still and watched as Zachary and his party walked away. After an indefinite amount of time, he finally came back to his senses when he was tapped on the shoulder. ¡°Mr. Callum?¡± The manager looked at Callum like a savior. He grabbed Callum and whispered, ¡°Mr. Callum, I saw someone who looked very much like Mr. Zachary earlier, but I didn¡®t dare to greet him because I was afraid I had the wrong person. However, he really looked like Mr. Zachary! The only difference was that there were no bodyguards with him. ¡± Yes, he must have mistaken the person just now. Mr. Zachary had bodyguards following him wherever he went. Even though the man earlier looked exactly like Mr. Zachary and even had the same re, they were not the same person. Callum quickly asked, ¡°Did you greet him?¡± 1 1 ¡°I wanted to, but I didn¡®t dare to after he red at me. Thank goodness I didn¡®t greet him, or it¡®d have been embarrassing,¡± the manager answered. If his real boss found out that the manager mistook someone else for him, the manager might end up getting fired. ¡°That¡®s good. If you see Mr. Zachary without his bodyguards with him in the future, just pretend that you don¡®t know him. ¡± The manager was confused. ¡°Do you mean that the man earlier really was Mr. Zachary? ¡°If it was, why do I have to pretend to not know him?¡± Callum patted the manager¡®s shoulder. ¡°Just keep my words in mind, and I guarantee that your work will go smoothly. You¡®ll get a promotion and a sry bump too. If you don¡®t listen to me, don¡®t me me for not telling you about this when you lose your job one day. ¡± The manager was speechless. ¡°Also, if I¡®m with Zachary when he doesn¡®t have bodyguards around, don¡®t call me Mr. Callum either. Understand?¡± For the sake of his promotion and sry raise, the manager nodded his head repeatedly. ¡°Yes, I understand!¡± Callum patted his shoulder again and said, ¡°Not bad. You have potential. ¡± Then, he walked away. Since Zachary appeared here without his bodyguards, he must have brought Serenity over. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Callum had to go over and greet his sister¨Cinw. He entered the restaurant but could not find his brother and sister¨Cinw. That was because Serenity and the others just exited when he entered, but they did not bump into each other. With that, Callum did not get to meet his brother and sister¨Cinw. ¡°Zachary, I¡®ll send my sister to work first. She¡®s going to bete. ¡± Serenity knew her sister was anxious. Liberty kept looking at the time on her phone. She could not bete for her first day of work. Serenity did not know that her sister had to run fiveps before she could go to work. Liberty usuallycked exercise, so she would most likely need more time to run fiveps. That was why she was anxious. ¡°All right. Drive carefully,¡± Zachary urged. Serenity responded and they walked away. Jasmine also said, ¡°I¡®ll go back to the store first, Mr. York. Thank you for treating me to breakfast. ¡± Zachary nodded. Jasmine left the hotel and rode away on her small e¨Cbike. Chapter 337 Chapter 337 Chapter 337 After Jasmine left, Zachary called his bodyguards and informed them to fetch him from the hotel. His bodyguards would always be following in his shadows. After receiving his call, they quickly arrived at the hotel to meet him. ¡°Go to the jewelry store first,¡± Zachary said to the driver when he got into the car. The driver replied respectfully, ¡°Yes, sir. ¡± There were many jewelry stores in a bustling metropolis like Wiltspoon. There was a jewelry store on the way from the hotel to the office. The driver stopped at the entrance of the store. ¡°You don¡®t need to follow me in. ¡± Zacharymanded in a low voice, got out of the car alone, and went into the jewelry store. He was very quick when it came to buying things. He selected a pair of gold rings, paid for them, and waited for a clerk to put the rings in two red brocade boxes and then into a bag. Zachary then took the bag before he simply turned and left. The clerk watched him go. When Zachary got into the car, the clerk withdrew his gaze and sighed in his heart, ¡®It turns out that stunning men like him actually exist. ¡®He¡®s mature, calm, tall, handsome, majestic and cool! ¡®He bought a pair of rings, so he must have a girlfriend. ¡¯ The driver drove away after Zachary entered the car. Jim turned to look at Zachary. ¡°It¡®s not for you,¡± the man said to him coldly. LI Jim quickly said, ¡°Mr. Zachary, I was just curious. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. I have no other thoughts. ¡± ¡®Even if it¡®s for me, I wouldn¡®t dare ept it. That¡®s a ring!¡® Zachary opened one of the brocade boxes and retrieved the ring. He slid it onto his ring finger on his left hand. Jim understood now. Zachary was dering his marital status to the public. He thought, ¡®Does Mr. Zachary n toe clean to the Missus? ¡°Mr. Zachary, can we call Missus ¡®Missus¡® when we see her in the future?¡± Zachary looked at him and said in a low voice, ¡°No. Keep calling her as you have. ¡± Jim was speechless. ¡®I misunderstood. ¡®Mr. Zachary isn¡®t trying to confess his identity to the Missus. ¡®In that case, what does he mean by wearing that ring?¡® Soon, Jim found out the real reason Zachary wore the ring. The car was again forced to stop in front of the office building because Ms. Stone was waiting there. Jim took his hat off to Elisa. ¡®She waits here every day without fail. Even though Mr. Zachary ignores her, she stilles here without feeling ashamed. ¡°Mr. Stone is probably helpless against his sister. ording to Mr. Zachary¡®s temper, he¡®ll definitely use a metlod that breaks Ms. Stone¡®s heart and make her give up on him. ¡®I don¡®t know what he¡®s thinking. He only called Mr. Stone once and told thetter toe over and take Ms. Stone away, but that was all. ¡¯ ¡°Zachary. ¡± Elisa held an insted lunchbox and a bouquet of flowers as she blocked the road. She shouted at the man in the car,¡± I won¡®t move unless you get out of the car, Zachary. ¡± For the past two days, she waited for him along the path of his way out of his vi, but she did not manage to meet him. She guessed he was avoiding her. He had a lot of houses under his name, and she did not know which one he was staying at. In the end, she decided it was better to wait in front of thepany. That way, there was no way she would miss him. Zachary sat quietly in the car for a minute before he reached out, pushed the door open, and got out of the car. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Chapter 338 Chapter 338 Chapter 338 Elisa was overjoyed to see Zachary getting out of the car. She felt that her persistence had led to some progress. Zachary went from ignoring her to getting out of the car to see her. That was progress indeed. ¡°Zachary, I prepared breakfast for you. ¡± 11. Elisa quickly brought the breakfast she made with love to him while handing him the bouquet of flowers. She smiled brightly and said, ¡°I personally snipped these flowers from my garden, trimmed the thorns, and arranged them into a bouquet. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. It¡®s for you. ¡± Zachary looked at Elisa without any expression on his face. ¡®She¡®s sending flowers to a grown man. How exactly did Serenity teach her to pursue me? ¡®Is she treating me as a woman?¡® He extended his right arm to receive the bouquet while the left arm took the insted lunch box. 1 1 1 1 Elisa was immediately feeling ecstatic. ¡®Is Zachary epting me?¡® The next moment, she saw Zachary wearing a gold ring on his left hand. The gold ring wasrge and worn on his ring finger. Even if there was no sun today, it glimmered and shone so brightly that no one could ignore its presence. L ¡°Zachary!¡± Elisa asked him cautiously, ¡°You¡­ Why are you wearing that ring on your ring finger?¡± She forced a smile and carefully exined, ¡°Rings worn on the ring finger are usually wedding bands. ¡± LLL Zachary turned and left after showing off his ring. He walked to the door of the security guard post and asked in a low voice, ¡°Where¡®s the garbage can?¡± The security guard hurriedly brought him the garbage can, and Zachary threw away the flowers along with the insted lunch box. He turned around, walked toward his car, and got in. He did not exin to Elisa why he was wearing a ring on his ring finger. As Elisa said, only wedding rings were worn on the ring finger. Its meaning was obvious. Elisa was not a fool, so there was no way she did not understand. ¡°Drive!¡± Zachary ordered in a low voice. The driver quickly started the car, passed by Elisa, and entered the building. Elisa was immobilized as if she had been petrified. She stood there, motionless, as her face grew paler by the second. It turned out that Zachary was not epting her. He just wanted to throw away the bouquet and the breakfast she made for him with love into the trash can in front of her. He was even wearing a wedding ring! Elisa had a crush on the man for many years, so she knew his hands had always been clean. He never wore any essories. 1 1 1 1 Now, he was wearing a ring on his ring finger. Was he telling her that he was married? However, she had not heard the news that he was married. Could it be that he did not announce the marriage in order to protect his wife? However, with his status, people would only be jealous of his wife. No one would dare touch her. Was it necessary to hide the marriage to protect his wife? Or did he deliberately buy a ring and wear it on his ring finger to trick her? No matter what, Elisa felt that she had to get to the bottom of this. If Zachary was really married, she would be the third party interfering with his marriage if she continued to pester him. It was not like no one else was willing to marry her. Even if she was head over heels for Zachary, she would not be the third party in his marriage. There were plenty of other fish in the sea. I LLLLLL 11111 She would never steal another woman¡®s man! With that thought, Elisa quickly ran to her sports car and drove away from York Corporation. She did not go to her love advisor since it was useless in this matter. She had to find her brother and beg him to help her investigate whether Zachary was married. She went straight to Stone Group. She was Clive¡®s only sister, and Clive doted on his sister dearly. He was famous in Stone Group and even Wiltspoon for that reason. Therefore, when Elisa drove straight into Stone Group, no one dared to stop her. She darted all the way upstairs and barged into the president¡®s office. Chapter 340 Chapter 340 Chapter 339 \ Clive received the news of his sister¡®s arrival a long time ago, so he did not admonish his sister for barging into his office like this. ¡°Why are you running so fast? Is there a ghost chasing after you?¡± Clive put down his fountain pen. Since his sister was here, he would not be able to work for the time being. ¡°Didn¡®t you go to York Corporation to wait for Zachary today? How many times have I said this? Zachary isn¡®t suitable for you, nor will he fall in love with you, but you don¡®t believe me and refuse to give up. Did you get hurt by him again? Clive got up and walked around his desk. When his sister came closer, he looked at her pale face with distress. ¡°What did Zachary do to you?¡± He was not in favor of his sister¡®s pursuit of Zachary, but he would never allow Zachary to hurt her. ¡°Clive. ¡± Elisa grabbed her brother¡®s arm and asked anxiously,¡° Clive, tell me quickly. Is Zachary single or married?¡± Clive was stunned and said, ¡°Why are you asking this question? Everyone in Wiltspoon knows that Zachary is single. He doesn¡®t even have a friend of the opposite sex. With his kind of temperament, he doesn¡®t allow young women to approach him unless they¡¯re rtives. Only you have the audacity to openly pursue him. ¡°I even told Zachary that it¡®s thanks to you that he can have the experience of being wooed. He¡®ll be forever alone with no one to appreciate him. ¡± ¡°Zachary was wearing a ring on his left ring finger. Is he really single? Could it be that we just didn¡®t know that he was married?¡± ¡°¡­Zachary is wearing a wedding band? But he¡®s really not married. ¡± The twopanies were fiercepetitors, and Clive had always kept an eye on Zachary. He would be the first to know if Zachary got married. Furthermore, with Zachary¡®s identity, how could no one know that he got married? His marriage would be a sensation in Wiltspoon. ¡°Then why is he wearing a wedding ring?¡± Clive said in amusement, ¡°How would I know? Maybe he wore it on a whim. Many people do that. Unmarried people also wear a ring or two, and people trying to show off their wealth will even wear rings on all ten fingers. ¡°I once saw an upstart who did that exact same thing. He wore gold rings on all ten fingers, a thick gold chain, gold bracelets on both wrists, a gold watch, and so on. In short, he waspletely decked out in gold. It was like he was worried that people wouldn¡®t know he was rich.All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± People like them who were truly rich kept a much lower profile. In their circle, people who adorned themselves with jewelry all over their body were just upstarts. ¡°Did he wear a ring on his left ring finger purposely to make me give up on him?¡± Clive pulled his sister to the sofa to take a seat. He poured a cup of warm water and handed it to her. Then, he sat down beside her and flicked her head and said dotingly, ¡°My sister is the smartest. ¡°Elisa, since you know that Zachary is doing this to make you give up, you should just give up. There are many young talents in Wiltspoon. As long as you like someone who isn¡®t Zachary, I¡®ll try my best to bring you two together. ¡± Elisa¡®s face was not as pale after she realized that Zachary only did that to make her give up. She took a sip of warm water and said, ¡°As long as Zachary is still single, I have my eyes set on him. I¡®m not marrying anyone except him!¡± Unless he was already married. Chapter 341 Chapter 341 Chapter 340 ¡°Why are you so stubborn?¡± ¡°Yeah, I¡®m just that stubborn. ¡± Clive was exasperated. ¡°Zachary won¡®t develop feelings for you, and the York family won¡®t pick you either. ¡± LILLL He analyzed for his sister. ¡°Old Mrs. York is an adult child. Out of her nine grandchildren, except for the youngest two who aren¡®t at marriageable age yet, the remaining seven are ready to get married. She¡®s looking forward to her grandchildren getting married. 1 ¡°It¡®s been some time since you publicly professed to Zachary, but what did Old Mrs. York do? She did nothing. It¡®s as if she doesn¡®t know that you¡®re pursuing Zachary. Do you know why? It¡®s because she doesn¡®t want you as her eldest granddaughter¨Cinw. ¡°Otherwise, with her personality, she¡®ll definitely encourage Zachary if she knows that someone is openly pursuing him. She might even do something excessive like wrapping him up and sending him to your bed so you two can do the deed. That way, she¡®ll be able to have a great grandchild as soon as possible. ¡°If Zachary and you sleep together, both the York and Stone families will tell Zachary to take responsibility for you even if he doesn¡®t want to marry you as a wife. ¡± Zachary was a very responsible man. Maybe that was why he always went around with an entourage of bodyguards wlio maintained a protective circle three meters around him, not allowing young women to approach him unless they were rtives. It was because he was afraid that someone would try to use this method to get him. 11 Elisa said, ¡°¡­Maybe Old Mrs. York doesn¡®t know that I¡®m pursuing Zachary. ¡± ¡°Just keep lying to yourself. Do you know who Old Mrs. York was when she was young? She was the boss of an intelligence circle. There¡®s nothing that can slip past her unless it¡®s something she doesn¡®t want to know. Your public confession to Zachary made the trending news. Old Mrs. York is neither blind nor deaf, so there¡®s no way she doesn¡®t know that you like Zachary. ¡°Since she didn¡®t make a move, it means that she doesn¡®t fancy you as her eldest granddaughter¨Cin¨C law. The York family is good, and their elders are open¨Cminded. As long as the young ones have a partner they like, the elders won¡®t get in their way. However, it¡®s very difficult to please elders who don¡®t like you after marriage. ¡± ¡°Elisa, listen to me. Stop going after Zachary. I admit that Zachary is exceptional, but he¡®s not suitable for you. You¡®ll only hurt yourself if you carry on like this. He doesn¡®t love you at all, so it won¡®t be painful for him. ¡± There would only be pain if there was love. Going after someone who did not love you was like trying to get through an iron bastion. It was a fruitless endeavor. Elisa said sadly, ¡°Clive, it¡®s easy to fall in love with someone, but it¡®s hard to give up on a person you love very much. It¡¯s not like I¡®ve never tried giving up on him. I tried for several years, but I couldn¡®t do it. That¡®s why I went all out to publicly confess to him and chase after him. ¡°I think I should still try. Even if I fail, at least I¡®ve tried, so I won¡®t regret it. If I give up without even trying, it¡®ll be a thorn in my heart forever. I might have missed out on someone whom I love.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. That¡®s something very, very painful. ¡± Clive took his sister¡®s shoulders and said in distress, ¡°Elisa, you¡®ve already tried and seen the results. Zachary has never warmed up to you. He has a heart of ice when ites to you. You¡®ll only be more hurt if you continue to go after him. T ¡°It¡®s not like no one else wants to marry you. Why bother pestering a man who doesn¡®t love you?¡± ¡°I¡®ve only been pursuing him for a short amount of time. Alice chased after you for an even longer time. ¡± Clive was speechless. Il His sister watched the entire process of his wife pursuing him, which became a good example and gave his sister the courage to chase after Zachary the same way. ¡°Clive, help me investigate Zachary. I want to know if he¡®s wearing that ring to trick me into giving up, or if he¡®s really married. If it¡®s thetter¡­ I¡®m willing to give up!¡± Chapler 340 When Elisa uttered thest two words, her heart hurt as if it was being pricked by a thousand needles. Chapter 342 Chapter 342 Chapter 341 Clive saw his sister¡®s pale face and knew that she must be devastated. He had been in love before. Although he had a happy marriage, he had experienced sadness and despair before that. Thus, he knew that feelings could hurt one deeply. Clive could also tell that Zachary would not fall in love with Elisa, so if Elisa continued to pester Zachary, she would be the one who would get hurt in the end. It was better to let her give up on Zachary as soon as possible. He sighed and said, ¡°Elisa, it¡®s not that I don¡®t want to help you investigate Zachary. Think about who¡®s working for him ¨C Josh Bucham. You know what the Buchams are capable of. Once I do a background check on Zachary, Zachary will know. 1 1 1 1 1 1 11 12 L ¡°Do you think Zachary will let me find out? Besides, I¡®ve arranged for most of my subordinates to look for our aunt. ¡± Elisa was silent. She knew what her brother said was true. Josh Bucham worked for Zachary, and everyone in Wiltspoon knew what the Buchams were best at. ¡°Elisa, there are so many good men in this world, so forget about Zachary. ¡± Elisa lowered her head and said nothing. Soon, tears flowed down her face, drop by drop. She was devastated. Why was it so difficult to love someone and want to be with him? Clive silently embraced his sister¡®s shoulders. ¡°Oh, Clive. ¡± Elisa leaned on her brother¡®s shoulder and cried. ¡°Why doesn¡®t Zachary like me? Am I not good enough? Does he think I¡®m arrogant and willful? He just needs to tell me what he doesn¡®t like about me, and I¡®ll change. ¡°But he didn¡®t even give me a chance. Am I just so unlikeable?¡± Clive was heartbroken. ¡°Elisa, there¡®s no reason to not like someone. He doesn¡®t like you not because you¡®re not good enough. Humans aren¡®t like cash. We can¡®t make everyone like us. Even if it¡®s cash, some people prefer pounds and euros over dors. 1 L ¡°You are unique, and your character is innate. I think you should live a carefree and easy life, and there¡®s no need for you to change yourself for anyone. You¡®ll be miserable if you change yourself, and we, your family, will feel distressed when we see you like that. ¡± Elisa sobbed. ¡°Brother, if I give up, I will feel that I have no purpose in life. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± ¡°Silly girl! How can you not have a purpose in life? You can set your goal to be the richest woman in Wiltspoon or T! further your studies to better yourself. Or, you can take over the task of looking for our aunt for our mother. You can make that your goal!¡± Clive pulled a few sheets of tissues from its box and handed them to his sister. ¡°Elisa, life is not just about love. You still have family and friends, and you can do more meaningful things. ¡± Elisa took the tissues to wipe away her tears and snot. ¡± Mom and aunt have been separated for decades. We have no clue how our aunt looked when she was older. We¡®ve been searching for so many years, but nothing useful came up. ¡± ¡°Mom has been hung up over looking for her sister her whole life. As her children, we should continue trying our best to help her find our aunt. As long as our aunt is alive, I believe it¡®s just a matter of time before we find her. So, do you want to ept this challenge?¡± Elisa cried a lot and vented the anguish in her heart. She finally calmed down, thought about it, and said, ¡°I¡®ll ept this challenge then. I will definitely help Mom to find our aunt!¡± To forget someone, one must do other things to distract oneself. LL Over time, Elisa would let go of her feelings for Zachary. ¡°Clive, can you still help me find out if Zachary is married? You don¡®t need to do a background check on him, just ask around to inquire about it so Zachary won¡®t be alerted. ¡± Clive was speechless. After his long and borated speech, his sister had not given up. Zachary did not care whether Elisa believed he was married or not. He was busy once he returned to the office. At half past ten, he got off work early without waiting for Serenity¡®s call. He drove the national MPV he used to deceive Serenity and headed straight toward Wiltspoon School. On the way, he parked the car when he came across a florist. Chapter 343 Chapter 343 Chapter342 Zachary hesitated and struggled for ten minutes before he pushed open the door to get out of the car and walked into the florist ¡°Sir, would you like to buy flowers? Are they for your girlfriend?¡± After Zachary looked around the shop, he said to the shopkeeper, ¡°It¡®s for my wife. ¡± The shopkeeper smiled. ¡°Is this for a birthday or wedding anniversary?¡± ¡°Neither. I just want to give her flowers. ¡± The shopkeeper smiled. ¡°What about a bouquet of roses interspersed with baby¡®s¨Cbreath?¡± Zachary had never bought flowers for a woman. He thought the shopkeeper¡®s suggestion was good, so he nodded and said, ¡°Sure, whatever you see fit. ¡± ¡°Please wait for a moment. ¡± The shopkeeper could tell this was the first time this man was buying flowers for his wife. After a while, the shopkeeper handed a bunch of flowers to Zachary. Zachary took the bouquet and paid the bill before turning around and walking out of the florist with the bouquet in hand. Zachary put the bouquet in the passenger seat and nced at the flowers every few minutes while driving. At the same time, he was still thinking about how he should give this bunch of flowers to Serenity. Soon, he arrived at the entrance of Wiltspoon School. Since he got off work earlier than usual, the students were only dismissed from school at this time. Thus, many students could be seen pouring into Serenity¡®s store. Some students were looking for study materials while others picked up their favorite stationery. Zachary got out of the car with the bouquet in his arMs. As soon as he saw a sea of people in Serenity¡®s store, he immediately put the bouquet back in the car. He then walked into the bookstore as if nothing had happened. When the students saw him, they began whispering as if they just saw a strict dean. Some students who were still struggling with which set of study materials to buy immediately made a decision and hurried to the cashier when Zachary came in. Zachary rarely appeared in the store at this time, but he left a deep impression on the students thest time he helped out at the store. That was why the students wanted to run away when they saw him. ¡°Uncle Zak!¡± The students were afraid of Zachary, but Sonny was not. Sonny was lingering around Serenity at first, but when he saw Zachary, he stopped following Serenity and happily ran to Zachary. As he ran to Zachary, he opened his arms for Zachary to carry him. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Zachary squatted down, and Sonny jumped into his arMs. Picking up the little guy, Zachary looked at his wife, who was busy collecting money. ¡°Do you need my help?¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Never mind. The more you help, the less money I make. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips. Having held such a high position for so long, he had built up his authoritative vibe, so it was difficult for him to look gentle. ¡°There are a lot of people here. Mr. York, you¡®re helping me by looking after Sonny. ¡± Zachary hummed. Having such a capable and skilled wife always made him seem useless. Zachary moved a chair and sat in the corner to y with Sonny. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. They sat there for about half an hour. When she was done with work, Serenity turned her head and saw Zachary ying with Sonny. Chapter 344 Chapter 344 Chapter 343 Zachary was exceptionally patient and would do whatever Sonny asked him to do. He would also teach Sonny some new ways to y with the toys. Serenity could not help but think that Zachary would be a responsible father when he has his own children. ¡°What¡®s the matter?¡± Jasmine noticed that her friend was staring in a certain direction, so she leaned over and found her friend looking at Mr. York. She suddenlyughed ambiguously and nudged Serenity¡®s shoulder. ¡°Do you think your husband is particrly handsome?¡± ¡°There¡®s no need to think about it. He has always been a handsome guy. ¡± ¡°Hurry up and jump him then. Look how nice and patient he is with Sonny. Although he looks like a block of ice, he¡®s actually quite soft¨Chearted. He must like children very much. You should jump him and get down to it, then you can give birth to a baby as good¨Clooking as him. How great is that?¡± Serenityughed. ¡°You talk as if I¡®m just trying to have a baby. ¡± She paused and whispered, ¡°Even if I jump him, I¡®m not brave enough to strip him, especially when I look at his stern and cold face. ¡± Men with Zachary¡®s temperaments were not easy to tease. When Zachary lost, he would kiss her as revenge. Jasmine burst outughing, then quickly covered her mouth. She smiled and whispered, ¡°Mr. York is just born with a cold face. Why don¡®t you get him drunk?¡± Serenity thought about that scene briefly and came back to her senses. She said frankly, ¡°I¡®m forbidden from entering his room. Forget it. I won¡®t dream anymore. We¡®ll take it day by day. ¡± After that, Serenity walked toward the two boys. ¡°Ant Swer!¡± Sonny, who was having a good time, raised his head and called out to Serenity. L Serenity reached out to pat her nephew¡®s head and said to Zachary, ¡°Mr. York, please y with Sonny for a while longer. I¡®ll cook. ¡± Zachary stood up. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Why didn¡®t you tell me just now? I know how to cook too. ¡± ¡°It didn¡®t cross my mind earlier. I¡®ll drop the courtesy and take up your offer the next time you¡®re here when I¡®m busy then. ¡± Zachary looked at her deeply. By dropping the courtesy, did it mean that she was tempted to make their marriage long term? ¡°I¡®ll cook now. If you¡®re hungry, have some snacks first. ¡± Serenity pointed to the ce where the snacks were kept and quickly went to cook lunch. Zachary picked up Sonny and followed Serenity into the kitchen. He watched silently as Serenity was busy cooking. After a while, he said in a low voice, ¡°I¡®ve asked my third aunt for the nanny¡®s contact number. Mrs. Lane said she could start work tomorrow. ¡°You can rx once Mrs. Lanees to work. ¡± ¡°You contacted her? How much is her sry?¡± Serenity washed and chopped a few tomatoes to make a tomato omelet. This was an easy and quick dish. ¡°It¡®s eight thousand dors a month. We¡®ll provide bed and board with two days off during the weekends. She¡®ll get a bonus if she does well. This is the market rate for nannies in Wiltspoon. Some with higher education earn about ten thousand dors a month. ¡± As the eldest in his generation, Zachary was aware of the domestic worker¡®s sries. Zachary under¨Cdered the sry because Mrs. Lane would get more than ten thousand dors a month working at the York Residence. Serenity turned to look at him with a shocked expression. ¡± A nanny¡®s sry has really skyrocketed. ¡± She initially thought it was three to five thousand dors a month. ¡°The price of goods is expensive now, so wages will definitely go up. ¡± ¡°They have two days off on weekends too. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before he said, ¡°We don¡®t have to work on weekends, and Liberty will take care of Sonny, so Mrs. Lane can have the weekends off. ¡± More importantly, Zachary wanted some alone time with Serenity on weekends and did not want Mrs. Lane to be the third wheel. ¡°I mentioned that I could take you to the beach for a weekend getaway since you like seafood. Let¡®s go on a vacation, then you can eat as much as you like. ¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Are you serious?¡± ¡°I never lie. ¡± Of course, Zachary would not admit it even if he lied. Serenity believed that Zachary was an honest man. ¡°Is Libertying over for lunch?¡± Zachary changed the subject. Chapter 345 Chapter 345 Chapter 344 Serenity said, ¡°My sister said she¡®s noting over for lunch because her office is quite far from here. It¡®s troublesome to go back and forth since she doesn¡®t have a long lunch break. They have an office cafeteria, so she¡®ll be eating there. ¡± 12 Zachary hummed. 1113 ¡°When Libertyes back from work in the evening, you should ask her if she can adapt to the company and if anyone bullies her. I¡®m quite close with Mr. Lewis, so if someone bullies her, I will ask Mr. Lewis to back her up. ¡± Serenity turned her head to look at him again. ¡°No wonder my sister loves you so much. She always tells me to treat you well. ¡± L Zachary blushed slightly. He had always been on his best behavior in front of his sister ¨Cinw. Due to time constraints, Serenity prepared a simple lunch. Fortunately, Zachary ate with relish and did not dislike it at all. Serenity thought that apart from not eating bacon, green onions, garlic, and coriander, he was actually quite easy to please. After the meal, Zachary did not leave immediately. Serenity washed the dishes and came out of the kitchen. Seeing that Zachary was still there, she took out her phone and checked the time. She walked over to him and asked, ¡± Mr. York, don¡®t you have to go to work in the afternoon? It¡®s past one o¡®clock. I remember you used to hurry back to the office at about one o¡®clock. ¡± Serenity noticed that Jasmine and Sonny were missing, so she shot another question, ¡°Where are Sonny and Jasmine?¡± 1 ¡°Ms. Sox said she was going to the supermarket to buy something, and Sonny followed her. ¡± Zachary felt that Jasmine went out deliberately to give the couple some privacy. It seemed that Jasmine truly had no intention of matchmaking Shawn and Serenity. Zachary¡®s opinion of Jasmine improved greatly. 11 ¡°Oh. ¡± Serenity walked back to the cashier and sat down. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary was in a dilemma. When Serenity looked at him, his words were stuck in his throat again, and he could not say anything Before Zachary could say the next sentence, Serenity asked with concern, ¡°Mr. York, have you encountered any difficulties? I can tell that you¡®re very troubled. You can share them with me and I¡®ll see if I can be of any help. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He did not have any trouble. No, he was actually in trouble. He bought a bunch of flowers for his wife, but he did not know how to give them to her. ¡°Is it a financial issue?¡± Serenity definitely could not help Zachary with his work probleMs. Furthermore, he would not look so troubled in front of her because of his work. ¡°How much do you need?¡± ¡°I¡®m not short of money. ¡± ¡°Then tell me what is it? What¡®s wrong? You don¡®t go to work when it¡®s time to leave, and you don¡®t speak your mind. Why can¡®t you just tell me straight? I told you that I¡®m stupid and can¡®t read your mind. ¡± Zachary was silent again. When he thought about the agreement, he could not bring himself to say anything. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. He felt that giving flowers to Serenity was a p in the face. Serenity was anxious because of his stoic expression. ¡°Mr. York, you don¡®t have to tell me anything if you don¡®t want to. I just feel anxious looking at your troubled face. ¡± Zachary still did not speak. Nana was eloquent and talkative, but her grandson was a man of few words. Serenity suddenly understood why Nana was trying to matchmake her with Zachary. Nana must have been worried that Zachary would stay single for life. Chapter 346 Chapter 346 Chapter 345 Zachary looked at Serenity silently for a moment and was still keeping mum. He then turned around and left. LILL Serenity opened her mouth and wanted to stop him, but she gave up. Since he did not want to say anything, it was useless even if she pried his mouth open. ¡°His silence is so annoying. Why can¡®t he just say it frankly?¡± Serenity criticized Zachary¡®s reticence. Humans were curious beings, and Zachary piqued Serenity¡®s curiosity by being so hesitant to speak. She always wondered what he was trying to say. 1 21 Within two minutes, the quiet man came in with a bouquet of roses. Serenity looked at him, dumbfounded. She could not believe that Zachary was holding a bunch of flowers. Serenity rubbed her eyes and looked at him again to confirm that the man was indeed Mr. York. ¡®Is he going to give me the flowers?¡® U1LL For some reason, Serenity¡®s heart raced, and every nerve in her body suddenly tightened. Hell, she was so nervous! Zachary did not hand the bouquet to Serenity. Instead, he ced it on the cashier. The man of few words said, ¡°I passed by the florist and saw the flowers were blooming beautifully, so I just bought a bouquet for you. It doesn¡¯t mean anything. ¡± After he finished his sentence, he turned around before she could react. He strode away and left. He did those in one smooth motion. It was as if he was afraid that Serenity would pick up the bouquet and p his face if he paused for a few more seconds. ¡°Mr. York!¡± Serenity came back to her senses. Without another thought, she rushed out of the store and called out to him. However, Zachary got into the car and drove away quickly as if he was being chased by a ghost. In the blink of an eye, his car was out of sight. Serenity was speechless. After a long while, she sighed. ¡°He¡®s so fast! This is so unexpected. ¡± Serenity thought about how funny that was and could not help but smile brightly andugh loudly. Zachary was hrious sometimes. When she had her fill ofughter, she returned to the store and sat down in front of the cash register. She looked at the bouquet of roses for a moment and picked it up. ¡°I don¡®t have any vases in the store. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± She walked around the store and put the bouquet back on the table. ¡°Serenity!¡± Shawn suddenly called out to her. 1 12 Shawn swiftly walked in. He was dressed in a ck suit. He looked handsome and courteous like a sessful businessman. LLI 1 However, Serenity still thought the best looking person in a suit was her husband. Perhaps it was Zachary¡®s temperament that gave people the impression that he was a sessful person. His maturity and calmness was not something Shawn could match. Shawn was still too young. ¡°Isn¡®t it working hours now? Why are you here?¡± Serenity asked instinctively. ¡°I just sent a document to my dad at the hotel and passed by here, so I came in to have a look. Is Jas here?¡± Shawn did not dare to say that he missed Serenity. That was the real reason he stopped by. Serenity also seemed to be a lot colder toward him, which flustered Shawn. ¡°Jasmine took Sonny to the supermarket. ¡± Serenity took out her phone and took a picture of the bouquet. Her eyes were always on the bunch of flowers and not Shawn. AT Seeing how focused Serenity was when she took pictures of the bouquet, Shawn asked tentatively, ¡°Serenity, this bouquet¡­¡± Chapter 347 Chapter 347 Chapter 346 Serenity said, ¡°My husband gave it to me. Isn¡®t it pretty? I think it¡¯s beautiful. I love it!¡± After taking countless photos of the bouquet, Serenity put down her phone to pick up the bouquet and took a sniff. ¡°It smells so good too!¡± To Shawn, this scene was an eyesore. ¡°Oh, your husband gave it to you? What¡®s the asion today? I haven¡®t seen him send flowers to you before. ¡± Shawn¡®s smile was a little stiff. His tone was a little bitter as if he had a bone to pick. Serenity looked up at him and said, ¡°Does it need to be an asion for my husband to send me flowers? If I want, my husband can send me a bunch of flowers every day. I was just worried that he¡®d spend too much because a bouquet isn¡®t cheap. It¡®s not edible either. I told my husband that it would be better if he saved that money to buy meat instead of flowers. That¡®s why he never sent me flowers. ¡± Shawn said, ¡°Right¡­¡± ¡°Shawn, are you looking for Jas? Why don¡®t you call her? She should be back soon. ¡± ¡°It¡®s nothing. I just passed by and thought ofing in here to see you two. I¡®ll head back to work then. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity responded while she admired the bouquet that Zachary gave her. When Shawn saw that her attention was on the bunch of flowers, he felt unbearable. But he could not say anything about it, so he turned around and left. Since thest time Serenity rejected Shawn¡®s invitation to attend a business reception with him, she was indifferent to him. She had always intentionally emphasized to him that she was a married woman. Shawn thought, ¡®Didn¡®t Serenity get married to a stranger?¡® 1 Jas said that Serenity only got married to put Liberty¡®s mind at ease and that Serenity and her husband signed a half year agreement. They would divorce after the contract period. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Did Serenity fall in love with her stranger husband? Shawn was listless. ¡°Shawn? Why are you here? Don¡®t you need to go to work?¡± Jasmine brought Sonny back just in time to see her cousin¡®s dejected appearance and immediately understood what was going on ¡°Jas. ¡± Jasmine called out to Shawn and he quickly regted his emotions in an attempt to cover up his loss. ¡°I was sending some documents to my dad and passed by after that, so I came to see you girls. ¡± Shawn¡®s excuse could deceive Serenity, but not Jasmine. Jasmine was aware that her uncle would usually discuss business with clients at their hotel but the bookstore was not en route from Lowe Enterprise¡®s hotel to thepany. Jasmine did not expose Shawn¡®s lie and said, ¡°Wait for me here. I¡®ll bring Sonny ande right out. Let¡®s go for a cup of coffee. ¡± 1 After that, Jasmine carried Sonny into the store. The little boy was already asleep. ¡°Seren, Sonny is asleep. ¡± Jasmine handed the little guy to her friend. Seeing the bouquet on the table, Jasmine understood the main reason for Shawn¡®s listlessness. She did not need to ask to know that Mr. York gave this bouquet to Serenity. VVI 11 L Jasmine thought, ¡®I guess Serenity made up with her husband. Mr. York even gave her flowers. ¡± Serenity carried her nephew. ¡°Sonny sleptte today. He usually naps at noon. ¡± Jasmine put the snacks and toys she bought on the table. ¡°You bought so many toys for Sonny again. ¡± 11 ¡°I bought whatever he liked, and it didn¡®t cost much. Seren, did Mr. York give you this bouquet? It¡®s so beautiful!¡± When Jasmine praised the beautiful bouquet, she winked at her friend. Serenity¡®s face flushed, and she said, ¡°He told me he came across a florist and saw this beautiful bouquet, so he got them for me. He also said that it didn¡®t mean anything. ¡± Seeing Zachary so troubled and him running away after he gave her the bouquet was enough for her to reminisce for a few days. It was nothing but hrious! Chapter 348 Chapter 348 Chapter 348 Zachary said he wanted the Hunts to be poorer than beggars. Josh replied with a smile, ¡°There won¡®t be a good show if you crush them with a single blow. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°You must be patient dealing with these people. Take it slow and let them lose everything they have bit by bit. It¡®ll be tormenting for them to try their best to fix their situation, yet they can only watch as they lose everything. ¡± Josh admitted he dropped the ball this time because he was in no hurry to crush the Hunts in one blow. ¡°But don¡®t worry, boss! You¡®ll definitely be satisfied with the results. ¡°John Hunt was fired by hispany. The trending story was very popr back then, so John has a bad reputation in the industry. It¡®ll be very difficult for him to find a good 1 1 1 1 job. ¡± Zachary¡®s expression eased after he heard that John hadpletely lost his job. ¡°You gotta thank Ms. Stone for this. Ms. Stone asked her brother to fire John. I have to say, Ms. Stone is especially nice to your wife. ¡± Zachary snorted coldly. Serenity did not know what was going on, so she supported Elisa in pursuing Zachary. That was why Elisa was nice to her. If Serenity knew, she would have asked Zachary, ¡°Are you the ¡®Mr. York¡® who Ms. Stone is wooing?¡± Zachary would not have known how to answer that. If Elisa could still treat Serenity well and protect Serenity after she found out that Zachary was Serenity¡®s husband, then Zachary would believe that Elisa truly regarded Serenity as a friend. Zachary took out the gold ring again and put it back on the ring finger of his left hand. When he went to Serenity¡®s store, he took off the gold ring. ¡°By the way, John wants to join York Corporation, so he contacted our HR and said that he has worked in Aron PCB for many years, making his way up from the bottom. He not only has a lot of work experience, but he also knows some of Stone Group¡®s insider news. ¡± John was just shy of saying that he could help York Corporation go against Stone Group. Zachary said coldly, ¡°Life will be lonely without opponents. It¡®s not that I can¡®t defeat Clive, I just don¡®t want to make my life boring and lonely. John is just an executive of Stone Group¡®s subsidiary, so how could he help me defeat Stone Group?¡± ¡°He¡®s quite boastful. ¡± Josh smiled and added, ¡°There are so many people who are full of themselves these days. Let¡®s just treat him like a clown. ¡± ¡°Give them another blow. ¡± Josh replied, ¡°That¡®s easy. But if you push too hard and they be broke, they will pester your wife and sister¨Cinw for money. Don¡®t forget that their grandmother is still receiving treatment at the hospital. ¡°When that timees, they¡®ll have nothing to lose, so they can do anything. ¡± ¡°Then do as you see fit. ¡± Zachary was aware too that these people were hard to get rid of. For the time being, the Hunts still had money to pay for Old Mrs. Hunt¡®s medical expenses. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. If they were to be beggars all at once, they would full¨Con pester Serenity and Liberty for money as Josh had mentioned. They should wait until Old Mrs. Hunt was discharged from the hospital and went back to her hometown beforepletely cutting off the Hunts¡® ie. Zachary¡®s eyes were cold. Back then, the Hunts relied on Serenity¡®s parents¡® insurance payout to get rich. Now, Zachary would make the Hunts spit it back out little by little. ¡°Don¡®t worry. I¡®ll get it done properly,¡± Josh assured with a smile. ¡°You can count on me!¡± Zachary hung up the phone. He knew he could count on Josh, but Josh liked drama, which made Zachary feel helpless. Was it that great to watch Zachary¡®s drama? Grandma May, Josh, and the York brothers were all watching this drama unfold. Chapter 349 Chapter 349 Chapter 349 In a cafe, Jasmine picked a secluded corner and sat down. Shawn sat opposite her. ¡°Shawn, what do you want to drink?¡± ¡°Whatever. I¡®ll have whatever you have. ¡± Jasmine said to the waiter, ¡°Two cups of ck coffee, please. ¡± ¡°Jas, ck coffee is bitter. ¡±¡® Jasmine nced at him. Shawn then said sheepishly, ¡°Fine LLLLL After the two cups of coffee were served, Jasmine asked bluntly, ¡°Shawn, I have a question for you. Are you in love with Serenity?¡± Shawn was stunned. He stared nkly at Jasmine. ¡°Jas¡­¡± ¡°Tell me the truth!¡± Jasmine ordered. Shawn¡®s face slowly flushed red. Did he show it? ¡°Jas, I¡­ I like Serenity. ¡± ¡°When did it start?¡± Shawn said in a low voice, ¡°I don¡®t know when it started. It might have been when I first learned about love when I was 14 years old, or maybe 17. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡± Jasmine said in a gloomy face, ¡°You¡®ve had a crush on Serenity for so long. ¡± Shawn hid it long enough. Jasmine and Serenity were not even aware of that and had treated Shawn as a younger brother. In fact, Shawn was three years younger than the two of them. He was like a younger brother to them. Shawn blushed. . ¡°Shawn, just give up. Serenity won¡®t like you back. She has always treated you as a younger brother. It was fine when she was single, but now she¡®s married¡­¡± LE ¡°Jas, didn¡®t you say that Serenity and her husband married for convenience? They¡®ll get divorced after six months. ¡± Jasmine said with a cold face, ¡°You don¡®t need to bother why they got married. The point is, Serenity is married. She¡®s someone else¡®s wife. Do you want to be a homewrecker?¡± Shawn said resentfully, ¡°I met Serenity first. ¡± ¡°Love isn¡®t firste first served. Did you know? Thest time Serenity treated you to lunch, her husband saw her putting some food on your te because your favorite dish was ced in front of her. That caused a misunderstanding Chai 144 and a fight between them. ¡± Shawn said, ¡°That just shows how petty her husband is. He doesn¡®t trust her, and couples who don¡®t respect each other won¡®t have asting rtionship. They¡®ll get divorced sooner orter. ¡± ¡°Whether or not they get a divorce isn¡®t important. What matters is that Serenity is married now, so you shouldn¡®t get close to her anymore. Don¡®t go to our store again unless the sky is falling. If you need to find me, just call me or go to my house. ¡°It¡®s better for both you and Serenity if you stay far away from her. ¡± Shawn¡®s face turned pale. ¡°Jas, you¡®re my cousin, so why aren¡®t you helping me? I¡®ve had a crush on Serenity for many years and have such deep feelings for her. If you don¡®t let me go to your store, you¡®re stopping me from seeing Serenity. ¡± Chapter 350 Chapter 350 Chapter350 Jasmine said, ¡°I¡®m only telling you all these because I¡®m your cousin. Not to mention Serenity doesn¡®t like you. And even if she does like you back, I don¡®t approve of you two being together. ¡± ¡°Why not?¡± ¡°Because of your family. I know my aunt very well. If she finds out that you like Serenity, do you think she¡®ll still smile at Serenity? She will only do everything possible to prevent you two from meeting each other. She may even do extreme things to Serenity. ¡°My aunt has been in high society for more than 20 years, so she has very high standards. You¡®re her only son and hope. You¡®re also the default sessor of Lowe Enterprise, so her expectations of you are very high. She wants you to marry someone from an affluent family. ¡°Serenity¡®s a great girl, and her only w is her family background. If you¡®re not involved, my aunt will happily treat Serenity as her niece for my sake. But when ites to you, she will be ruthless. Serenity is definitely not a good daughter¨Cinw candidate in my aunt¡®s eyes. ¡± Jasmine got to the point and showed no mercy. ¡°Shawn, your feelings for Serenity won¡®t benefit Serenity. It will only bring disaster to her. I¡®m your cousin, and I don¡®t want you to be hurt by love, but I¡®m also Serenity¡®s best friend. I don¡®t want Serenity to be hurt by my rtives. ¡°Shawn, just let it go. Serenity is not the one for you, and she will never like you back. Think about it. You two have known each other for more than ten years. We all grew up together, so if she liked you at all, isn¡®t ten years more than enough time for her to develop feelings for you? ¡°Serenity has treated you like a younger brother for more than ten years. An elder sister would never see her younger brother in a romantic light. If you don¡®t give up and go on like this, you¡®re the one who will suffer. ¡± Shawn¡®s face turned even paler than before. Shawn only knew that he loved Serenity and saw that his mother liked Serenity very much. He did not think any further. ¡°Serenity got married to a stranger to move out of Liberty¡®s house because Liberty has always been worried about her. To reassure Liberty, Serenity married Mr. York at first sight and lied to Liberty about it. Liberty had always thought they got married for love. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. ¡°Why would Serenity rather marry a stranger than ask us for help? That¡®s because she had never thought about you guys. Your aunt once thought about matchmaking Serenity with your eldest cousin. In fact, as long as Serenity told me of her ns, she could have the liberty to choose any men from the family. LTL ¡°But in the end, she married Mr. York without telling anyone. ¡± Shawn asked with a trembling voice, ¡°Jas, do I have no chance at all?¡± ¡°None. ¡± Shawn was speechless. Seeing her cousin¡®s despair, Jasmine could not bear it and sighed. ¡°Shawn, listen to my advice. Stop your crush on Serenity before she finds out. The sooner you let it go, the higher chances of you maintaining this friendship with her. Otherwise, you won¡®t be able to stay friends. ¡± ¡°I think Serenity knows. ¡°She¡®s very cold to me now¡­¡± Shawn said bitterly, ¡°Serenity and I will either be lovers, husband and wife, or strangers. ¡± Jasmine said viciously, ¡°Then you should be strangers. That¡®s better for everyone. ¡± ¡°Jas!¡± Shawn¡®s eyes turned red. Serenity was the first girl he ever liked, and he had had a crush on her for many years. Shawn had thought about it. They had known each other for more than ten years. His cousin was also Serenity¡®s best friend, and even his mother was very fond of Serenity. Therefore, he would confess his love to Serenity when he was more mature. They would get their happy ending. However, his cousin brutally burst his bubble. He was in so much pain like his heart was cut into a million pieces. ¡°Shawn, if you really love Serenity, you should stay far away from her. That¡®s what¡®s best for her. If you truly love someone, you don¡®t necessarily have to be with her. As long as she¡®s happy, you¡®ll feel happy too. ¡°Seeing her well would be a relief for you. ¡± Shawn¡®s eyes were red, and he said bitterly, ¡°Jas, I¡®m not that selfless. ¡± He loved Serenity and wanted to be her husband. He was not so selfless as to feel happy for her when she was with another man. Chapter 351 Chapter 351 Chapter 351 Jasmine looked at Shawn with a stern face and said seriously,¡± Shawn, don¡®t make me look down on you! Shawn was too hurt to speak. He felt like he could not let it go. However, he could not do anything to hurt Serenity either. Jasmine eased her expression because Shawn was her cousin after all. She sighed and said, ¡°Shawn, I¡®ve already told you whatever I could. You should calm down first and force yourself to stay away from my store for a while. If you don¡®t see Serenity for some time, your feelings for her will fade. ¡± As she finished speaking, she got up and said, ¡°This coffee is my treat. I¡®m heading back to the store. You should hurry back to the office because yo ¡®re still a trainee. You should work harder than anyone else because you¡®re not the only sessor in your family. If you don¡®t work hard, you¡®ll eventually lose what should belong to you. ¡± With thest bit of advice spoken, Jasmine pulled out her chair, and turned to walk away. Shawn sat there with a nk mind. When he realized that he loved Serenity, he was not bold enough to confess to her. He just let the opportunity slip away from him. When Jasmine returned to the store, Sonny had already woken up. Serenity was making handicrafts, and Sonny was sitting beside her ying with his toys. Jasmine looked at her friend quietly. Serenity was good¨Clooking and was especially beautiful when she was engrossed in doing what she liked. Jasmine could not me Shawn for falling in love with Serenity. ¡°Jasmine, what are you doing looking at me like this? Did you fall in love with me?¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°I¡¯d definitely fall for you if I were a man. Seren, do you know how charming you are?¡± ¡°How charming can I be? I didn¡¯t even have a boyfriend before getting married. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s because you chose not to fall in love with anyone. ¡± Jasmine pulled a chair over and sat in front of the cash register. She asked, ¡°Is your online business doing well now? I noticed that you¡¯ve been making handicrafts every day whenever you¡¯re free. ¡± ¡°Zachary and his cousin rmended my online business to their colleagues. There are a lot of people in theirpany, so they brought in a lot orders for me. Ms. Stone also helped to promote my online business. Her circle is filled with rich people, and they ordered some of the more exquisite products. ¡± Fortunately, Serenity owned the bookstore so she could still do the handicrafts during the day. Otherwise, she would not be able to juggle two jobs. ¡°Where are the two kitties?¡± Jasmine asked casually when he saw Serenity¡¯s dog lying obediently at Sonny¡¯s feet, but the two cats were nowhere to be seen. She added, ¡°Ms. Stone is really supportive. I think the public opinion of Ms. Stone is a bit exaggerated. Maybe they¡¯re just jealous of her good background. They magnify her shorings. and keep stepping on her. ¡± ¡°That¡®s also possible. ¡± Serenity also thought that Ms. Stone was immensely easy to get along with and felt that Ms. Stone was a righteous person. Ms. Stone was forthright about her feelings. She lived a carefree life because of her good background. Serenity truly enjoyed being friends with Ms. Stone. Ms. Stone once said that she felt a natural bond with Serenity when they first met. Serenity felt the same way now. ¡°The two kittens are sleeping on the bookshelf. ¡± Serenity pointed to the ce where her two cats were sleeping. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. Ring ring ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone was ringing. Serenity nced at the caller ID and saw that it was Zachary. She stopped her work and grabbed her phone to answer Zachary¡®s call. ¡°Mr. York, what¡®s the matter?¡± ¡°Are you busy?¡± Zachary was unlike his usual quiet self. This time, he spoke quickly, and his tone seemed less indifferent. ¡°Well, my online business is doing very well, so I¡®m rushing some orders. ¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Aren¡®t you busy now?¡± ¡°I¡®m on a short break, so I thought of calling you. ¡± Chapter 352 Chapter 352 Chapter 352 Serenity smiled, ¡°I¡®m ttered, Mr. York. Do you have something to say to me?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°I don¡®t have to socialize tonight. I was wondering if you¡®d be interested in going shopping with meter?¡± Zachary fled after giving Serenity that bouquet. After some thought, he suddenly felt that taking the initiative was not so difficult after all. Thus, he mustered up the courage to ask his wife out that night. After giving it a thought, Serenity said, ¡°I was thinking of bringing Sonny to pick Liberty up from work later. If you don¡®t mind, we can fetch my sister from work and go shopping after dinner. ¡± ¡°Is Liberty working overtime?¡± ¡°She just sent me a message saying that she doesn¡®t have to work overtime on the first day of work, so she can get off work at half past five. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before he said, ¡°Okay, I¡®ll pick you upter and we can fetch Liberty from work together. I¡®ll buy you all dinner. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°See you. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Zachary did not hang up immediately. He was waiting for Serenity to say something sweet. However, Zachary did not hear any words of affection from Serenity. Instead she asked, ¡°Mr. York, is there anything else?¡± ¡°No, I¡¯ll hang up then. ¡± Serenity hummed and disconnected the call. Putting down the phone, Serenity noticed that her friend wastughing at her. Serenity reached out and poked her friend¡¯s forehead. ¡°What are youughing at?¡± ¡°Seren, you and Mr. York have made some progress! I think he¡¯s interested in you. You two should grasp this opportunity. I¡¯m still waiting to attend your wedding!¡± Serenity and Zachary only registered for a marriage license. They neither had a wedding reception nor publicized their rtionship. Only the people closest to them knew that the two were married. ¡°Let¡¯s just go with the flow. ¡± Serenity did not deliberately pursue Zachary, but if Zachary took the initiative, she would not shy away either. She did not ta the initiative because she was afraid that Zachary would not love her back, and she would end up getting hurt. If Zachary took the initiative, Serenity would not avoid it and they could let their feelings develop naturally. That way, they would both fall in love with each other, which would be the best result. ¡°Ant Swer!¡± Sonny got tired of ying by himself, so he got up to walk to Serenity and sat on Serenity¡¯s lap. ¡°Sonny, you don¡¯t want to y by yourself?¡± ¡°I miss Mommy. ¡± The little guy stepped on Serenity¡¯sp and stood up, wrapping his arms around Serenity¡¯s neck. ¡°Sonny miss Mommy!¡± Usually, when Liberty sent Sonny to Serenity, he could still see his mother at noon. Yet today, he had not seen his mother since he parted from her in the morning. Sonny missed his mother. Serenity hugged the little guy and said softly, ¡°I¡®ll take you to pick up your mommyter, okay?¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity kissed his little face. ¡°Then you should y by yourself for a little while. I¡®ll take you to see Mommy when I¡®m done. ¡± Sonny looked reluctant. He put his arms around Serenity¡®s neck and did not let go. Jasmine stood up, stretched out her hand, and coaxed him. ¡± Sonny,e here! Aunt Jas will take you out to y. ¡± Sonny thought about it for a while. He then let go of Serenity¡®s neck, turned around, stretched out his arms to let Jasmine carry him. ¡°Seren, hurry up and finish your orders. When Mr. Yorkes over, you can take Sonny to Liberty¡®s office. I¡®ll man the store tonight. ¡± Jasmine then brought Sonny out to y. When Serenity¡®s dog saw Sonny being carried away by Jasmine, it followed them. ¡°Jasmine, Snowball is following you. ¡± The dog had pure white fur, so Serenity named it Snowball. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine stopped and waited for Snowball to catch up, then the three of them went out to y. Chapter 353 Chapter 353 Chapter 353 Zachary was in a good mood after asking his wife out on a shopping dateter that night. His work efficiency improved greatly. When he responded to a knock on his door, everyone outside could hear that he was in a good mood. Josh pushed the door open and came in. He was not alone. Remy followed Josh in. Remy¡®s bodyguards were waiting at the door of the office. ¡°Boss, Mr. Johnson is here. ¡± Zachary stopped working, got up, and walked around his desk. ¡± Mr. Johnson. ¡± The two men shook hands as Zachary motioned for Remy to have a seat on the sofa. Mr. Chaplin informed Zachary earlier that Remy was here, but Zachary did not expect Remy and Josh toe in together. Maybe those two met outside. Josh went to pour a ss of water for Remy. After Remy drank the water, Zachary asked in a deep voice, ¡°Mr. Johnson, is there a problem with our cooperation?¡± An important partner like Remy could see Zachary at any time without an appointment. However, Remy was mostly in contact with Josh. So when Remy came to Zachary¡®s office to see him this time, Zachary thought that there was a problem with the cooperation between the twopanies. Remy said with a smile, ¡°Mr. York, there¡®s no problem with our cooperation. It¡¯s going very well. I came here this time to deliver an invitation to you on behalf of my eldest brother and sister¨Cinw. ¡± Hearing this, Zachary smiled. ¡°Is Mr. Young¨CJohnson holding a wedding reception? Is everything with the Lafayettes in Meadspring settled?¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s over. My brother and sister¨Cinw came back from Meadspring to attend President Ormond¡¯s wedding. Their wedding date was set a long time ago. My brother¡¯s wedding is after his brother¨Cinw¡¯s wedding, so it¡¯s time to send out the invitations. ¡± * Remy took out the invitation that his eldest brother asked him to bring over. Ben Young¨CJohnson couriered the invitation to his other business partners, but Remy delivered the invitation to Zachary because he happened to be in Wiltspoon. Since Remy was solely responsible for the Wiltspoon branch of hispany, he usually stayed in Wiltspoon. That was why Ben asked Remy to send the invitation to Zachary in person. ¡°My eldest brother wanted toe over in person, but he was tremendously busy with work. There were many things waiting for him to deal with. Since I happened to be here, he asked me to bring this invitation to you. He also extended his apologies. ¡± Zachary epted the invitation and said understandingly, ¡°I understand Mr. Young¨CJohnson¡¯s situation, and there¡¯s no need. for him to apologize. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. It¡¯s all the same for you to bring it over. ¡± He opened the invitation and looked at the date. The wedding was set on the 26th of December, which was right around New Year¡¯s Eve. That was still over a month away. Ben distributed the invitations so quickly that Zachary could tell he was in a hurry to hold a wedding. Zachary heard that Ben and his wife also married on impulse. Why had these eligible bachelors been going for impulse marriages? It might be because they were swarmed with work. They held high positions in society and had a high worth, so they were afraid that others would target them for their status and money. Thus, they did not dare to simply fall in love and hid their identity to marry on impulse. If a woman could fall in love with them when they were not rich, she would love them just as well when she found out they were rich. They could also know that the woman did not marry them for money, but for love. However, Ben and his wife, Jane Murphy, had known each other for more than ten years. Zachary heard that Ben had set his eyes on Jane long ago and slowly tricked Jane into being his wife. Zachary thought of himself and Serenity. They were the true definition of impulse marriage as they had no feelings for each other when they carried at first sight. Before they got their marriage license, Zachary was wary about Serenity and even suspected she was in it for the money. However, reality proved that Zachary was overly cautious and overthinking the situation. ¡°I will definitely be at Mr. Young¨CJohnson¡®s wedding. ¡± Zachary promised he would attend Ben and Jane¡®s wedding. Remy said with a smile, ¡°Thank you, Mr. York. ¡± Chapter 354 Chapter 354 Chapter 354 Zachary said, ¡°I¡®ve always looked up to Mr. Young¨CJohnson and was hoping for a chance to meet him. You¡®ve given me this opportunity. ¡± Remy smiled. ¡°My eldest brother has also admired you for a while, Mr. York. ¡± They exchanged pleasantries. Remy came over to Zachary¡®s office to deliver his brother¡®s wedding invitation. Since it had been delivered, Remy did not stay long because he was busy. He said, ¡°Mr. York, Mr. Bucham, I have something else to attend to, so I¡®ll get going now. If you have time in the evening, we can have dinner together. My treat. ¡± IL Josh smiled. ¡°I¡®m fine anytime, but Mr. York might not be free. ¡± Zachary interrupted. ¡°I¡®ll buy you dinner some other day, Mr. Johnson. ¡± Zachary had ns with his wife tonight. Remy smiled. ¡°Okay, then. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. I¡®ll wait for your call. ¡± He stood up. Zachary and Josh both got up and walked Remy out of the office together. ¡°Mr. York, Mr. Bucham, you don¡®t have to send me off. ¡± Remy stopped at the door of the office and asked the two men to stay. Zachary and Josh stood at the door and watched as Remy left with his bodyguards. When Remy was no longer in sight, Josh nudged his friend and asked for gossip. ¡°Where are you going tonight? You dumped all your socializing events on me and didn¡¯t even want to go to dinner with Mr. Johnson. ¡°Zachary, I feel like I must¡¯ve owed you so much in our past life. that I have to ve away for you in this life. I¡¯m like a dog that will be there for you whenever you need me. ¡± Zachary turned around and walked inside. ¡°You can only realize your true value when you¡¯re with me. I¡¯ve provided you with a stage so you can perform well. ¡± Josh giggled and closed the door. ¡°Are you going on a date with your wife?¡± ¡°Yes. Why, do you want to be a third wheel? Or are you jealous? Would you like me to arrange a blind date for you so you can get married at first sight too?¡± Josh quickly said, ¡°I¡¯m quite tactful, so I won¡¯t be your third wheel. Although I really want to join, I¡¯ll stay away this time for the sake of your happiness. ¡°Well, I¡¯m not jealous. You don¡¯t even look that happy now, and a while ago, you were torturing everyone in thepany with your stone face. ¡± Josh sat opposite his friend and said with a smile, ¡°Even if I want to get married, will you be able to arrange a blind date for me? Your grandma had to force you into an impulse marriage. How many unmarried young women do you actually know?¡± Zachary rolled his eyes at Josh. ¡°I happen to know an unmarried young woman. Based on my observation, she¡¯s quite nice and has a decent family background. Her family is rich. She¡¯s righteous, loyal, and most importantly, pretty. She matches you well. ¡± 2/3 Josh was curious. ¡°Who?¡± ¡°My wife¡®s best friend, Jasmine Sox. ¡± Josh replied, ¡°Oh, her¡­¡± He looked hesitant. Zachary was puzzled and asked him, ¡°What¡®s with your expression?¡± ¡°You don¡®t know because you don¡®t attend parties. Jasmine Sox drank too much at Mrs. Dawson¡®s birthday partyst time, and do you know what she did? She just slept on the floor. Everyone there was stunned. ¡± Chapter 355 Chapter 355 Chapter 355 Josh said, ¡°I heard about it even though I wasn¡®t there. Mrs. Lowe was the one who brought Jasmine to the banquet that time, so she quickly dragged Jasmine away. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He heard Serenity mention asionally that Jasmine¡®s family kept urging her to get married. Last time, Serenity even apanied Jasmine on a blind date at Beans and Cream. Did Jasmine do that at Mrs. Dawson¡®s birthday party on purpose for the sake of her peace and quiet? That way, her family would not urge her to marry. ¡°Ms. Sox was a sensation for lying on the floor. Everyone in our circle heard about this girl. ¡± Josh smiled. ¡°The girls in our circle won¡®t just lie on the floor even if they¡®re drunk because etiquette is engraved in their bones. They will still look ele int when drunk. ¡± After a moment of silence, Zachary asked his friend, ¡°Then do you like an elegant drunk or a wild drunk?¡± ¡°I haven¡®t thought about this. But if you really want to arrange a blind date for me, go for it. I¡®ll meet Ms. Sox and check out how high her standards are. Remember not to tell her my true identity. ¡± ¡°You¡®re learning from me, huh?¡± ¡°Yeah, am I not allowed to copy you?¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Be my guest. I¡®ll go home and ask my wife tonight so she can mention it to Ms. Sox. If Ms. Sox is willing, I¡®ll arrange for you two to meet, lest you envy my married life. ¡± Josh was speechless. He was never envious of Zachary. After Zachary signed several documents of utmost importance, he got up and said to Josh, ¡°I¡¯m getting off work. Don¡¯t call me tonight unless ourpany is in danger of going bankrupt. ¡± Josh looked at the time. It was only four o¡¯clock in the afternoon. He followed Zachary out andined as he walked. ¡°Zachary, did you even see what time it is? It¡¯s only four o¡¯clock! That¡¯s way too early to leave work. You weren¡¯t like this before. You used to want to work until midnight. ¡± ¡°I wasn¡¯t married before, but I am now. ¡± Josh was speechless. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. Zachary was showing off that he was married again. ¡°I finally took a step forward, so I can¡¯t possibly retreat now, right?¡± Josh hurriedly said, ¡°Don¡¯t retreat, bro. Advance boldly, advance~¡± Mr. Chaplin looked over with astonishment when he heard Mr. Bucham singing. Josh was thick¨Cskinned and did not feel embarrassed at all. When Josh and Zachary got into the elevator, Josh asked, ¡± Zachary, I¡¯m now reminding you as your best friend. What have you done when you said you took a step forward?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not much. I just hesitated to give my wife a bunch of flowers. ¡± ¡°Tsk! I thought you two finally had sex!¡± Zachary said, ¡°Josh, can you get your mind out of the gutter?¡± ¡°You¡¯re husband and wife, so sex is normal. Your grandmother is still waiting for a great¨Cgrandchild, and I¡¯m also waiting to be a godfather!¡± 97 Zachary paused and said, ¡°Nana told me privately that Serenity thinks I¡®m too cold and serious, like a rock. She said even if she jumped me, she wouldn¡®t be able to eat me for fear that her teeth would chip off. ¡± ¡°Pfft! Hahaha! Tell her that she¡®s wee to jump you anytime. Even if her teeth break, you can just buy her some gold Grillz! That way, she won¡®t be worried anymore. ¡± Zachary kicked Josh when he heard that. Josh¡®s office was on the 66th floor. After being kicked by Zachary, Josh reluctantly walked out of the elevator and returned to his office to ve away for Zachary. Zachary did not let his bodyguards follow him and drove off by himself. Just like he did at noon, Zachary went straight to Wiltspoon School. If Grandma May found out, she would be ted because Zachary and Serenity finally looked like a real couple. Zachary was just o arrogant and had a bad temper. Perhaps Serenity giving him the cold shoulder made Zachary realize that he did not like that feeling and that he cared more about Serenity by the day. Since Zachary had given Serenity flowers at noon, he did not buy more. Instead, he went to the mall to buy arge bag of snacks for Serenity and some new toys for Sonny. Chapter 356 Chapter 356 Chapter 356 The people who Serenity cared about the most were her sister and nephew. Pleasing Sonny would earn Zachary some brownie points. Zachary bought the bag of snacks because Serenity was a foodie. Serenity might not be so happy if Zachary gave her a bunch of flowers, but she would definitely smile when she saw this big bag of snacks. Zachary walked into the bookstore with a bag of snacks in his left hand and an airne model in his right. At that time, Serenity had just finished feeding her nephew a bowl of porridge. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Uncle Zak!¡± The little guy was overjoyed to see Zachary. Serenity saw the toys that her husband bought and said, ¡°Mr. York, why did yr ¡®ibuy toys for Sonny again? Jasmine already bought him new ones. ¡± Zachary handed the bag of snacks to Serenity and gave the airne toy to Sonny, then he carried the little guy. ¡°Sonny¡®s our only nephew. Who else can I spoil if not him? What Ms. Sox bought for Sonny is her business. It doesn¡®t sh with me. ¡± Serenity put the empty bowl on the table, looked through the bag on the floor, and said, ¡°Are these all snacks? You bought so much?¡± ¡°Sonny is bored here, so I bought him some snacks. ¡± It was obviously for Serenity, but when he was facing her now, he got tongue¨Ctied. Thus, he used Sonny as an excuse. ¡°Mr. York, you¡¯ll spoil Sonny like this. ¡± Serenity did not think much about it. ¡°Sonny is very smart and sensible. As long as we teach him well, he¡¯ll know what¡¯s right and wrong. He won¡¯t be spoiled. ¡± Serenity looked at him. Zachary¡¯s ears gradually turned red because of Serenity¡¯s stare. ¡°Mr. York, you seem to talk a little more than usual. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He thought she would praise him for being handsome. It turned out that she thought he talked too much. Was she trying to say that he had a long tongue? Nana has always said he was inarticte, but now that he said a few more words, his wife thought he was talkative. Jasmine came o¡® of the bathroom and saw Zachary. She greeted Zachary with a smile and said to her friend, ¡°Seren, Liberty is about to get off work. You already fed Sonny, right? You and Mr. York should bring Sonny to pick Liberty up from work. I¡¯ll man the store. ¡± Serenity hummed and took the bowl into the kitchen to wash. A few minutester, Serenity took some snacks from the bag and gave them to Jasmine. She said, ¡°Mr. York bought too much for Sonny. I¡¯ll give you some. ¡± Jasmine did not refuse them. Serenity carried the bag of snacks and said to Zachary, ¡°Mr. York, let¡¯s go. ¡± Zachary saw that Serenity wanted to bring the bag of snacks back to Liberty¡®s house and was a little anxious. He scolded himself, ¡®Why can¡®t I just tell the truth in the beginning?¡® Zachary¡®s expression remained calm as he said, ¡°Serenity, you don¡®t need to bring this bag of snacks home. Just put it in the store. Sonnyes here every day, so let him eat them slowly. ¡± Serenity heard this and thought about it before she said, ¡°I¡®ll bring half to my sister¡®s house so that Sonny can eat some at home. I¡®ll keep the other half in the store. ¡± Serenity liked to eat, so she could share the snacks with Sonny. Zachary stopped talking. At least Serenity left half of the snacks in the store, so she could still eat them. Chapter 357 Chapter 357 Chapter 357 Serenity said, ¡°Oh, right!¡± She suddenly thought of her pets and asked Zachary, ¡°What about Snowball and the rest? Should we bring them along?¡± ¡°Snowball?¡± Zachary¡®s eyes turned dark as he thought, ¡®Who is Snowball?¡® ¡°It¡®s the puppy you gave me. I named it Snowball. ¡± Zachary¡®s eyes turned gentle instantly. It turned out to be the puppy. He thought he had another love rival he was not aware of. ¡°Seren, if it¡®s inconvenient, Snowball and the kittens can stay in the store. I¡®ll bring them back to my house after work and bring them back here tomorrow. I have pets at home too, so I promise I can take good care of them. ¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Great! I¡®ll leave Snowball and the kittens to you then. ¡± She hugged Jasmine and cooed, ¡°Jas, you¡®re the best girlfriend in the world!¡± Jasmine gently pushed her away and said with a smile, ¡°Don¡®t sweat the small stuff with me. We grew up together. Hurry up, don¡®t make Mr. York wait for too long. ¡± Only then did Serenity go with Zachary without worries. ¡°Serenity, leave your car here. I¡®ll take you to work tomorrow. ¡± Zachary said to Serenity as he opened the car door and put Sonny in the car. ¡°Sure. ¡± Serenity had no problem with that since Zachary¡¯s car was a seven seater MPV. The interior was also spacious andfortable. Since Zachary¡¯s car was not equipped with a child seat, Serenity was worried about letting her nephew sit in the back by himself. Thus, she carried Sonny and sat in the back. Although Zachary did not stop Serenity, he was thinking of asking Sam to buy him an infant car seat tomorrow for his car. Next time, Sonny could sit in it and Serenity could sit beside him in the passenger seat. The couple took Sonny to Lewis & Co. It was just after office hours when they arrived at Liberty¡¯s office. Many staff were lingering at the entrance. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. After waiting for several minutes, Liberty came out from the building. Serenity had already sent a message to tell her sister that she woulde to pick her up, so Liberty rushed out right after work. However, her legs were still a little sore because she ran fiveps in the morning. Liberty had not exercised for a long time and was forced to run fiveps at one go. When she was done with her run, she almost slumped to the ground and felt her legs did not belong to her anymore. ¡°Liberty!¡± Serenity got out of the car with her nephew in her arms and watched as Liberty came out of the office building with a smile. All of the staff of Lewis and Co. were wearing the same professional suit. Those who were not wearing them had just 23 started work today. ¡°Mommy!¡± Sonny saw Liberty and struggled to free himself, so Serenity put him down, and he immediately ran toward Liberty. Upon seeing her son, Liberty felt energized again. She took a few strides forward and picked her son up to kiss his little face. ¡± Sonny, do you miss Mommy?¡± ¡°Yes! I miss Mommy very much. ¡± Serenity walked over and said, ¡°Sonny didn¡®t see you at noon and said he missed you in the afternoon, so I coaxed him and said I¡®d bring him to pick you up from work. He only looked happier after he heard that. ¡± Liberty was a little heartbroken to hear that. Her son was only two years old, but he was forced to be separated from his mother during the day, so the little guy was definitely not used to it. However, for their livelihoods and future, Liberty could only persist. Liberty¡®s situation was not bad. At least, they could still meet each other every morning and night. Many of those who came to work in Wiltspoon from other towns left their children in their hometowns with their inws. They only got to see their children every few months or even once a year. That kind of longing was truly tormenting. Chapter 358 Chapter 358 Chapter 358 Serenity asked, ¡°Liberty, is everything going well?¡± The Hunt sisters walked toward Zachary¡®s car while they talked. Liberty smiled. ¡°Did you forget what I used to do back then? Work is pretty easy. I was a little rusty at first, but I got my groove back pretty quickly. ¡± However, Liberty still did not get along with her colleagues. It might be because of themotion Liberty caused on the day of the interview. Everyone knew that Liberty was acquainted with Mr. Lewis, so they were being nice to her superficially while behind her back, they gossiped she had a rtionship with the CEO. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. The looks that Liberty got from the female staff were indescribable. Liberty identally overheard her colleagues talking about her when she was in the bathroom. However, this w s only her first day of work. It would eventually get better. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Liberty greeted her brother¨Cinw as she got in the car. Zachary nodded. His eyes then fell on Serenity. Liberty had been there and done that, so she instantly understood her brother¨Cinw¡®s deep gaze when she saw it. After Liberty got in the back seat, she closed the car door without waiting for Serenity to get in the car. Serenity did not think much about it and was toozy to go around ¨C to the other side, so she simply opened the car door and got into the passenger seat. ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s have dinner first, then we¡¯ll take you and Sonny home after. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Liberty was in a much better mood now that she had a job. The Hunt sisters were talking non¨Cstop while on the way to the restaurant. Zachary was focused on driving, but he also listened in on their conversation. Since Zachary was buying dinner for his wife and sister¨Cinw, he would not scrimp and brought them to Wiltspoon Hotel. As soon as the hotel manager saw Zachary without his bodyguards, he was reminded of Callum¡¯s advice. He quickly went aside and turned his back toward Zachary. He was afraid that he would habitually greet Mr. York and lose his job because of it. ¡°Zachary, you could¡¯ve just brought us to a typical restaurant. We don¡¯t need to dine in such a luxurious ce. ¡± Liberty felt a little distressed for her brother¨Cinw¡¯s wallet. They could forget the formalities since she was not an outsider after all. She would not mind even if they ate at a food truck. Zachary took the sisters upstairs and entered a private room. ¡± Liberty, ourpany owns this hotel, so we are entitled to employee discounts when we dine here. It doesn¡¯t cost much after the discount. ¡± Liberty smiled and said, ¡°That¡¯s good. ¡± Thanks to her sister and brother¨Cinw, Liberty could sit and dine in the most exclusive hotel in Wiltspoon. Zachary got the menu and handed it over to Liberty so she could order anything she fancied. After all, Liberty was his sister¨Cinw. Liberty browsed the menu briefly and closed it before handing it over to her sister. ¡°Seren, you choose. ¡± Serenity took the menu and flipped through it as well. She felt that every disl? here cost exorbitant. If Zachary had not brought them here, Serenity and Liberty would never have walked into Wiltspoon Hotel for a meal. Of course, the food at Wiltspoon Hotel was delicious. Serenity still remembered the night she apanied Jasmine to a dinner party here and tried all the food. Serenity and Jasmine ate to their hearts¡® content and almost had to hold onto the wall to walk out. Zachary¡®s eyes were sharp and noticed that the Hunt sisters could not bring themselves to order because the food was costly. He could understand where they wereing from. After Liberty got married, she became a full¨Ctime housewife and had no source of ie. Her husband was stingy with her, so Liberty had to sp noney wisely. Serenity¡®s ie was not too shabby, but she was nning to save up for a house of her own in Wiltspoon. That was why she would not spend excessively, which Zachary could tell from the price of her breakfast. ¡°I¡®ll order then. ¡± Zachary took the menu from his wife and ordered a few dishes with ease. After the waiter noted their order and left, Zachary said to his wise, ¡°I just got a bonus today. ¡± He was implying to Serenity and Liberty that they should eatfortably and not worry for his wallet. Chapter 359 Chapter 359 Chapter 359 Liberty winked at her sister, and Serenity understood the underlying meaning. She just wanted to say that Zachary was a good man, and that Serenity should treat him well. Serenity had to admit that although Zachary was sometimes domineaaering and petty, he was a righteous man when it came to facing difficulties. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. He was better than a lot of men out there. More importantly, even though their rtionship was not based on love, Zachary had been great to Serenity and was doing his best. In order to prove to Liberty that she was treating Zachary well, Serenity kept serving Zachary food by putting them on his te during the dinner. Zachary relished the food and felt loved. e food Serenity put on his te was extra It turned out tha delicious. Zachary suddenly recalled the time he saw Serenity putting food on Shawn¡®s te at Grace¡®s Diner. Zachary thought, ¡®Shawn must¡®ve been ecstatic at that time, right? ¡®Hmph, so what? Serenity serving him once doesn¡®t mean anything! ¡®Serenity only sees Shawn as her younger brother! ¡°There¡®s no other meaning to it!¡® Serenity had been serving Zachary continuously throughout the meal, but Shawn only enjoyed that treatment once. Shawn would never catch up to Zachary. 4. apter 350 So what if Shawn loved Serenity? Zachary was now Serenity¡¯s husband. Regardless of their rtionship, at least Zachary was Serenity¡¯s legal husband. Shawn should just move aside. Zachary did not need to be jealous of Shawn. Instead, Shawn should be jealous of him. Zachary psyched himself and finally let go of what happenedst time when Serenity put food on Shawn¡¯s te. All of them enjoyed the dinner merrily. After dinner, the young couple sent Liberty and Sonny home before they went shopping. This was the first time Zachary was going shopping with Serenity after being married for such a long time. Shopping at the supermarket di not count. The streets at night were bustling with people. Zachary could humble himself and apany Serenity to the supermarket, and that went without saying he could do the same now when they were shopping at a mall. The young couple walked with the crowd and wandered aimlessly. ¡°Serenity, is there anything you want to buy?¡± Zachary finally could no longer help himself but ask Serenity when he saw her walking toward the exit without entering any shops. ¡°I can¡¯t think of anything I want to buy. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Then, let¡¯s buy something to eat?¡± Put ¡°We¡®ve only eaten and drunk aplenty, so just take this as a brisk walk to ease our digestion. I can¡®t eat anymore. ¡± Zachary looked at her deeply for a moment and said helplessly,¡± Let¡®s just do that then. ¡°. He was fine with continuing to step on ants as long as he was with Serenity and doing what ordinary couples would do. Seeing other couples walking with either holding each other¡®s hands or hugging each other¡®s waists, Zachary quietly nced at Serenity¡®s hand. He tried to hold her hand several times, but he aborted every attempt. Damn it! Zachary was not afraid of anything, but he actually flinched when he wanted to hold Serenity¡®s hand. Chapter 360 Chapter 360 vChapter 360 It was most likely because of Zachary¡®s guilty conscience and the signed agreement. Zachary decided to find a way to steal the copy of the agreement that Serenity was keeping. Oh, not steal, but just take it back. Stealing sounded horrible. How could the heir to York Corporation steal something? After taking back the agreement, he would destroy it. Zachary, who had no guts to hold his wife¡®s hand, apanied his wife as they strolled along the streets all night. By the end of it, Zachary acted as a free porter and got into the car with various shopping bags. At first, Serenity mentioned there was nothing she fancied buying. However, after walking for a bit, she found a galore of things to buy and spent her own money. Zachary wanted pay for her, but she firmly refused, which frustrated Zachary. At ten o¡®clock at night, the young couple returned to their small apartment. ¡°Fortunately, I don¡®t like wearing heels. My feet are so sore after walking for so long. ¡± Serenity slumped on the sofa as soon as she got home. Zacharyughed and said, ¡°Don¡®t you girls like shopping very much?¡± He was a man who never liked to go shopping with others, but he did notin. ¡°Well, yeah. Jasmine loves shopping. I¡®m really scared to go shopping with her because she can go from the east to the west of the city. ¡± Speaking of Jasmine, Zachary came over and sat beside Serenity. He said, ¡°Serenity, there¡¯s something I want to ask you about. ¡± Serenity turned to look at him and asked cautiously, ¡°What is it?¡± This was Zachary¡¯s house, so he could do whatever he wanted. If he needed to ask for her opinion, it must be a big deal. Zachary was silent for a moment before he said, ¡°Is Mr. Sox¡¯s family urging her to get married?¡± ¡°Yes. Why? Are you thinking of introducing someone to her?¡± Serenity was excited and asked, ¡°Is it your colleague? Jasmine¡¯s mother and aunt had always wanted her to marry into a wealthy family, but Jasmine doesn¡¯t want to. She feels that life in a rich family isn¡¯t as good as we imagine it to be. She said that her aunt suffered a lot when she first got married into the Lowe family. It took her aunt a lorg time before she made a name for herself. ¡°Yourpany is thergest in Wiltspoon, and everyone says that those who can work at York Corporation are the best among the elites, so your colleague must be extremely capable. Please tell me more about him. If he¡¯s suitable for Jasmine, I can help introduce them. ¡± Serenity was thrilled to be a matchmaker for her friend. ¡°He¡¯s my colleague. He and I are close. He¡¯s the same age as me, and he¡¯s from a good family. His ie is pretty high. He¡¯s honest to a fault, and doesn¡¯t have any bad habits. Sometimes, he drinks for work events, but he doesn¡¯t get drunk. ¡°He¡¯s also exceptionally good¨Clooking, tall, and muscr. He never had time to date because of his busy schedule, and his family is anxious about his marriage too. ¡± Serenity heard this and thought that Zachary¡®s colleague was decent. She asked, ¡°Does he have any shorings?¡± Zachary was silent for a while before replying softly, ¡°He¡®s just a bit talkative. He has a thing for drama and gossip. ¡± Serenity was speechless. She thought she could help her friend find the perfect man. However, the old saying was right, ¡°nothing is perfect¡±. Human beings would always have shorings. They suddenly fell into an awkward silence. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. After a while, Serenity smiled sheepishly and said, ¡°Well, that just means he¡®s eloquent. Having a thing for drama and gossip is something that many people have. Well, I think it¡®s amon w. I¡®ll ask Jasmine what she thinks about this tomorrow. If she¡®s willing to meet him, I¡®ll let you know. ¡°Then you can arrange for your colleague to meet Jasmine and see if both of them can get along. Zachary nodded, ¡°Okay. ¡± ¡°By the way, is your colleague from Wiltspoon? Jasmine won¡®t move out of Wiltspoon, so if he¡®s from out of town, don¡®t bother. ¡± The Soxes would not agree to Jasmine moving far away. ¡°He¡®s from Wiltspoon. Mr. Sox is your best friend, so I¡®ll definitely introduce the best colleague I can think of to her. My colleague doesn¡®t have any ws aside from being talkative and having a thing for gossip. He¡®s an eligible bachelor. ¡± Serenity believed that Zachary bore well intentions. He would never introduce bad men to her friend. Chapter 361 Chapter 361 Chapter 361 A few momentster, Serenity said, ¡°After listening to what you¡®ve said about your colleague, I think he¡®s better than all the blind dates Jasmine had gone to. I¡®ll ask her what she thinks tomorrow. ¡°It¡®ste now, Mr. York. I¡®m going back to my room to wash up and sleep. ¡± Serenity was exhausted from shopping. Zachary got up as well and said faintly, ¡°Oh, good night. ¡± Serenity replied with a good night and went into her room. She could not be bothered to even put away the things she bought from shopping and nned to leave them for tomorrow morning. Seeing how she went straight into the room without any intention to stay, Zachary stood where he was and remained silent for a long time. After a while, he walked out to the balcony, sat down on the swing, quietly looking at the night sky and wondering how both of them would go on in the future. Zachary was used to sleepingte, so he sat at the balcony until past eleven o¡®clock before returning to his territory. The husband and wife lived in the same house, but they stayed separately. He did not enter her room, and neither would she step into his territory. Once the doors of the two rooms were closed, it was as if they had nothing to do with each other. It was Zachary himself who had caused this. The night passed without another word. The next day, Serenity woke up at her usual time. She habitually went to the balcony to tend to her flowers. Then, she saw some tiny ants on the balcony. When she bent down to have a closer look and followed the ant trail, she traced it back to them crawling out from several potted flowers. She realized why there were so many ants in the area. It was because the ants hatched from their eggs in the soil since she had not used any pesticide when she made a garden out of the balcony She usually watered the flowers without bending down, so she did not notice there were ants in the flower pots. After watering the nts, she took her purse and went out to the market to buy groceries for a home¨C cooked lunchter in the store. She also bought a few packs of ant repellent and sprinkled them in the flower pots. In the future, Sue had to diligently kill insects and ants for her flowers, lest the pests go out of control. Serenity was at the market for half an hour and came back with several bags of groceries. When she went upstairs, she found a middle¨Caged woman standing in front of her house. The woman was pulling out her cell phone, seemingly wanting to make a call. ¡°Madam. ¡± Serenity walked over and called out to the woman, who was startled by her greeting. She smiled and asked the woman,¡± Madam, may I ask who you¡®re looking for?¡± Mrs. Lane blinked. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡®Is this the missus? ¡®I was about to call Mr. Zachary and our conversation might give away his identity. Fortunately, she interrupted me by calling out to me. ¡®Otherwise, if he picked up my call and she heard me addressing him as Mr. Zachary by habit like how it is back in the main residence, it might raise suspicion to the ordinary man persona he painstakingly crafted, or it could have also been exposed by me. ¡® ¡°Hello. ¡± Mrs. Lane smiled. ¡°I¡¯m Mrs. Lane, the nanny Mr. York hired. I¡®m here to start work today as agreed. I came here ording to the address that Mr. York gave me. Are you Mrs. York?¡± So it turned out to be Mrs. Lane. Serenity took out her keys and opened the door, saying, ¡°Mr. York told me about you. You can just call me Serenity, Mrs. Lane. I¡®m not too used to being called Mrs. York. ¡± In reality, she still felt like she was the same free and unfettered Serenity Hunt. She only remembered that she was married when she saw Zachary. ¡°That¡¯s¡­ not really¡­¡± Mrs. Lane was hesitant to call the missus by her name. When they spoke, she had already sized up Serenity. She saw that Serenity was carrying several bags of freshly bought groceries in her hands, and felt that Serenity was someone down¨Cto¨Cearth, just like Old Mrs. York. She was not arrogant or haughty like other richdies. Serenity invited Mrs. Lane into her home and said with a smile,¡± Since you¡®reing to work with us, we have a professional rtionship. You can just call me by my name. There¡®s no need to call me Missus. ¡± Hearing Serenity and Mrs. Lane¡®s conversation, Zachary quickly put on his clothes and came out of the room. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± Chapter 362 Chapter 362 Chapter 362 Mrs. Lane greeted Zachary with a smile. Zachary instructed her to call him Mr. York in front of Serenity. ¡°Mrs. Lane, you¡®re here. Serenity, this is Mrs. Lane, the one I told you about. ¡± Zachary quickly made the introductions. Serenity smiled. ¡°I saw her as I wasing back. Mrs. Lane already introduced herself. Have a seat, Mrs. Lane. I¡®ll bring the groceries inside. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± ¡°Let me do it, Mrs. York. ¡± ¡°Mrs. Lane. ¡± The woman smiled apologetically. After stealing a nce at Zachary, she stopped calling Serenity ¡°Mrs. York¡± and changed her form of address to Ms. Hunt instead. ¡°Mr. York and Ms. Hunt, I reckon you haven¡®t had breakfast? I¡®ll cook for you. ¡± Serenity wanted to stop her, but she said with a smile, ¡°Ms. Hunt, I¡®m here as a nanny. Mr. York already briefed me on my job description. From today onward, I have to earn my pay. You can¡®t let me receive a sry without doing anything and leaving everything to you, right, Ms. Hunt?¡± Serenity had no choice but to let Mrs. Lane take the groceries she brought back into the kitchen. ¡°Mrs. Lane, I¡®m bringing the spare ribs, corn, carrot, peas, the two sausages, as well as that handful of leafy vegetables to the store for my lunchter. ¡± 1 Mrs. Lane answered from the kitchen, ¡°Yes, Ms. Hunt. ¡± She quickly separated the ingredients Serenity wanted to bring to the store before using the remaining ingredients to make breakfast for three. Serenity stood at the kitchen door for a moment and watched Mrs. Lane¡®s skillful and swift movements. Judging by how she cleaned as she went, it seemed that Mrs. Lane liked to keep everything clean too. Thus, Serenity was relieved and went to the balcony. Zachary followed her. ¡°Mrs. Lane is meticulous in her work. ¡± He saw his wife holding a small bag which contained several small packets, and asked, ¡°What is that?¡± ¡°Ant repellent. I¡®ve never used pesticide on the flowers since I bought them, and there are ants everywhere now. Maybe there were ant eggs in the soil, but we didn¡®t know because we didn¡®t pay enough attention. The ants have hatched now. ¡± She exined while taking out the ant repellent, tearing open the bag and sprinkling a little into each pot of flowers. ¡°You need to get rid of ants regrly when growing flowers. ¡± Although Zachary had never done gardening before, he knew the basic concepts. He saw the gardeners at home often spraying insecticide and sprinkling ant repellent to keep insects away. Serenity hummed and continued to sprinkle the repellent into the flower pots. However, she ran out of the ant repellent. She bought too little. She would have to buy a few more packs again tomorrow. Standing up straight and turning around, she saw Zachary holding the prong and using it to collect the clothes that he hung to dry here yesterday. Serenity recalled his little actions yesterday, but she feigned ignorance and asked casually, ¡°Are they dry?¡± ¡°Yeah. ¡± Zachary touched the new clothes. They were all dry. However, his expression grew a little sullen. That was because he made an amateur mistake. He washed the clothes with water. He did not think it through and casually threw the clothes in the washer. It was already toote by the time he realized what he did. However, he epted the mistake and looked at the silver lining instead. Looking at the clothes now, Zachary regretted it. He most likely would not be able to wear them anymore. If Nana knew he made such an amateur mistake, she wouldugh at him for the whole year. ¡°What¡®s wrong?¡± Serenity asked him. Zachary immediately rolled the clothes into a ball in his hands and said, ¡°Nothing. I¡®m going back to my room to change. ¡± With that, he turned away with the clothes he could not wear anymore. When he got into his room, he called Jim immediately. He asked him to get more sets of clothes from the store Serenity bought for him and send them to the dry cleaners so he could wear them for Serenity to see another day. Chapter 363 Chapter 363 Chapter 363 Zachary stayed in his room for a while until Serenity came knocking on his door. ¡°Mr. York, Mrs. Lane says that breakfast is ready. ¡± Serenity stood in front of his room door, knocking on the door while shouting for him. However, she silently thought, ¡®He¡®s been in there for a while. Is he not done changing? ¡®He¡®s usually swift and decisive, rarely dilly¨Cdallying. ¡®Oh, except when he wants to send flowers. He¡®s not swift and decisive when ites to that. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡¯ Zachary opened the door. His shirt was on, but it was still unbuttoned. As soon as he opened the door, Serenity saw his slightly exposed pecs. She was stunned, then said, ¡°It¡®s time for breakfast, Mr. York. ¡± . Zachary paid attention to Serenity¡®s expression. When he saw that she only froze slightly, he walked away after she finished speaking. He closed the room door again and looked down at his unbuttoned shirt. Did he not expose enough? His wife was not drooling yet. Wait. He seemed to be ying tricks and seducing his wife. More importantly, he failed to seduce her. Zachary felt that he must have been possessed for the past two days to act like this. When he was at the officeter, he would ask Josh if thetter could rmend any powerful mediums to him and get rid of the spirit. A certain Mr. York, who had been dilly¨Cdallying and waiting for his wife to knock on the door, moved much faster after his wife came knocking. In less than two minutes, he came out of his territory. Serenity saw that he was only wearing a shirt and suit pants. He had not put on his suit jacket, and his tie was not worn either. She sighed again in her heart. ¡®What¡®s wrong with Mr. York? It took him so long to change his clothes, but he didn¡®t even put on his tie yet. ¡® ¡°Mr. York and Ms. Hunt, try my cooking. ¡± Mrs. Lane brought out the breakfast she prepared and ced them on the dining table before calling for the young couple. Since there were i nly two of them living in the small home, the house was neat and tidy with only a small amount of chores to do. With Mrs. Lane around, Serenity had nothing else to do, so she strolled over upon being called. ¡°Only two portions? Where¡®s yours, Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°I¡®ll eat in the kitchenter. ¡± Mrs. Lane and her fellow colleagues usually set up a separate table for themselves and ate together. Zachary bore a stoic face constantly and was intimidating. Whether it was in his private vi or in the old residence with the other nannies and helpers, no one had the courage to eat at the same table with him. ¡°Come and eat with us, Mrs. Lane. ¡± Serenity did not care much about social ss. They all worked for a living, so she did not have a sense of hierarchy. In the eyes of the York family, Serenity was the missus of the family. This title was honored beyondparison in Wiltspoon. Unfortunately, Serenity was not aware that she had such a prestigious status. Serenity even went into the kitchen to help Mrs. Lane bring out her breakfast. Mrs. Lane looked at Zachary. Zachary said gently, ¡°Mrs. Lane, if Ms. Hunt says to eat together, then let¡®s eat together. We¡¯re very easy to get along with. Just think of this ce as your own home. ¡± Mrs. Lane was shocked. It turned out that Mr. Zachary could actually speak so gently and pleasantly. ¡°All right. ¡± After being red at by Zachary, Mrs. Late snapped back to her senses and quickly went into the kitchen. She took her breakfast from Serenity and said with a smile, ¡°I¡®ll do it, Ms. Hunt. ¡± There was an additional person at the table. Serenity ate with gusto as usual, praising Mrs. Lane¡®s cooking skills as she ate. Zachary was as elegant as usual. Mrs. Lane, on the other hand, was quite ufortable, and nced at Zachary from time to time. Fortunately, Serenity was so focused on eating that she did not notice Mrs. Lane¡®s strange behavior. Chapter 364 Chapter 364 Chapter 364 Mrs. Lane smiled when she saw Serenity eat with such enthusiasm. As she watched, she suddenly felt hungry as well. She stopped looking at Zachary and started to eat with gusto. While Mrs. Lane brought the dishes to the kitchen to wash them after the meal, Serenity pulled up a chair and slowly walked to Zachary. Zachary instantly straightened up like a defensive hedgehog. The difference this time was, he was not guarding against her. Instead, he was nervous and had no idea what his wife wanted to do to him. ¡°Mr. York, we have a guest room, but there¡®s no bed. Text ? by N0ve/lDrama.Org. After we pick Sonny upter, we¡®ll send Mrs. Lane and Sonny back to the store. We¡®ll have to go and buy a bed and sheets for her since we can¡®t let her sleep on the floor. ¡± The hedgehog¡®s quills ttened at once. ¡°You¡®re thedy of the house. You can arrange it however you like. ¡± Zachary had an important meeting this morning and could not spare the time to apany Serenity to buy the beddings. ¡°Have you run out of the ten thousand I gave you previously? When I get to the officeter, I¡®ll use a computer to transfer some money to the living¨Cexpenses card. Although we hired Mrs. Lane as a nanny to take care of Sonny, we can¡®t treat her poorly. Buy a higher¨Cquality bed and cab. Don¡®t feel bad about spending the money. ¡± ¡°I haven¡®t used up the money, so you don¡®t have to transfer more. There¡®s enough money left to buy the furniture for Mrs. Lane. Don¡®t worry, I¡®m not the kind of person who would abuse the nanny. ¡± Serenity¡®s face reddened a bit when he mentioned the living¨Cexpenses bank card. When they were having a cold war, she was in a bad mood and went out on a mad shopping spree. She swiped the card used for living expenses and spent quite a lot of his money. Serenity decided to use her own moneyter when she went shopping as a way to make up for her act of abusing the living¨Cexpenses card. In a family, both the husband and wife had to contribute. She would not take advantage of him, and he would not scheme against her. They coexisted peacefully and respected each other like a guest. Zachary¡®s face was gentle, but his eyes were like a bottomless and unfathomable pit when he looked at her. IL However, not a word came from him. Serenity was used to his habit of staring at her silently. In fact, she would find it abnormal if he spoke more. Zachary was speechless still. ¡°Oh, it¡®s gettingte. We have to hurry to fetch Sonny from my sister¡®s ce. My sister has to go to work. ¡± Liberty was riding her own bike to work today, so there was no need to pick her up and drop her off again. Zachary hummed and stood up. He walked back to his room. Soon, he came out again. In his hand was an extra suit jacket as well as a tie. He simply held them in his hands, neither tying the tie nor putting the jacket on. Serenity was waiting for Mrs. Lane at the kitchen door. Perhaps because Zachary¡®s gaze was intense, Serenity looked over and saw him staring at her. She blinked, smiled at him, and turned back to Mrs. Lane, Seeing that Mrs. Lane finished washing the dishes, she said with a smile, ¡°We have to go now, Mrs. Lane. Your daytime job is mainly to help me take care of my two¨Cyear¨Cold nephew, Sonny. He¡®s very obedient when he wants to be, and equally naughty when he¡®s feeling mischievous. Mrs. Lane removed her apron andughed as she walked out. ¡°All children are like that. ¡± When Sam arranged for her toe over, he made it clear to her what her job was. Zachary would increase her pay as long as she did her job well. Zachary was still standing there with his jacket and tie in his hands. Serenity did not know what he wanted, but Mrs Lane did. She whispered something to Serenity. Serenity instantly looked at Zachary. ¡®That¡®s what he wants? ¡®But I don¡®t know how to help a man tie a tie. ¡®Is it toote to search the steps online and learn now?¡® Chapter 365 Chapter 365 Chapter 365 Serenity did ording to her thoughts. She immediately took out her cell phone and searched online on how to tie a tie. After quickly reading the steps twice, she stuffed her phone back into her pants pocket. She moved forward, grabbed the tie that Zachary held in his hand, and ced it around his neck. ¡°You went back to the room to change your clothes, but you took longer than a girl putting on makeup. You didn¡®t even wear your tie. ¡± Seeing this, Mrs. Lane tiptoed and went out. She waited for the young couple outside. ¡°Of all the men I know, no one wears suits and ties except for my scumbag broth :¨Cinw. I really have no experience and just learned it froi. . the inte, so I don¡®t know if I can get it right. Bear with me if I strangle you, okay?¡± Zachary¡®s eyes shed with pleasure as he heard her soft mutters. She had no experience. She never tied a tie for a man before. She even had to surf the Inte on the spot to find the steps. This made him incredibly happy. Although Serenity read through the steps twice, she still could not tie it well. ¡®It looks easy, but why is it so difficult? ¡®It wasn¡®t this hard for me to learn to weave my handicrafts. ¡® ¡°I¡®ll do it. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Zachary took back the tie in resignation, afraid that she would identally strangle him to death if she continued. Serenity sighed with relief and blushed a little. It was such a simple thing, but she did not seed. It was like when she wore her red scarf in first grade. The red scarf looked ttering on other people, but when it came to her, her scarf was a mess as if she simply tied a knot around her neck. Serenity thought in her heart, ¡®He should¡®ve done it himself from the start. ¡¯ In the past, if she merely touched his face, he would avoid her like she was a pervert. Now, however, he waited for her to tie his tie. The man, who was unable to enjoy the experience of having his wife tie his tie for him, put on his suit jacket only to see that Serenity was already walking out with her purse. Zachary was speechless. He first drove Serenity to Bright Boulevard. Liberty was waiting downstairs anxiou. . y with Sonny. ¡°Sorry we¡®rete today, Liberty. Will you make it in time for work?¡± Liberty handed her son to her sister, but the little one clung to her neck today and refused to follow Serenity. ¡°I want Mommy. ¡± Sonny kept repeating, ¡°I want Mommy. ¡± Serenity quickly coaxed her nephew. ¡°I¡®ll carry you, Sonny. Let¡®s go shoppingter, okay?¡± Sonny said insistently, ¡°I want Mommy. ¡± ¡°Sonny, be a good boy. Mommy needs to go to work to earn money to buy milk form for you. Go with Aunt Seren, okay? Mommy will be back soon. ¡± Liberty also coaxed her son while forcefully prying his hands away from her neck and shoving him to her sister to hold. ¡°Seren, I have to go to work now. I¡®m runningte. I¡¯ll try toe over at noon to keep Sonnypany. ¡± Her son probably refused to go with her sister today because he did not see her yesterday since she did not drop by at her sister¡®s store for lunch. ¡°I want Mommy. Mommy¨C¡± Sonny started to wail. His small body thrashed around in Serenity¡®s arms, trying to break free from his aunt¡®s embrace. Liberty put on her helmet and quickly rode away. When Sonny saw his mother leaving, he cried even louder. As Liberty drove away, she could still hear her son¡®s heartbreaking cries. She suddenly felt her vision turn blurry. However, she coul not earn money to support her son if she stayed by his side. Chapter 366 Chapter 366 Chapter 366 However, if she went to work to earn money, she would not have time to spend with him. Liberty sniffled but did not turn back. She moved forward on her bike ferociously. She would be fine once her son¡®s crying was out of earshot. Serenity carried Sonny to the car. After coaxing him for a long time with Mrs. Lane, the boy finally stopped crying. He refused to sit by himself and nestled in Serenity¡®s arMs. He wrapped his arms around her tightly and muttered pitifully, ¡°¡­not want me anymore?¡± He did not speak clearly, so Serenity could not catch what he said at first. She gently pushed the little one away and asked softly, ¡°What did you say?¡± Sonny looked up a. Serenity and asked, ¡°Mommy no want me anymore?¡± ¡°Who said that? Your mommy only went to work. It¡®s not because she doesn¡®t want you. Your mommy wille back every night to apany you. ¡± Sonny said in grievance, ¡°Daddy said mommy no want me. ¡± Serenity wanted to cuss. ¡°That scumbag Hank Brown! He doesn¡®t want Liberty to work, so he spoke nonsense to Sonny. He¡®s trying to use Sonny to stop Liberty from rejoining the workce. ¡°Sonny, your daddy is lying to you. Your mommy will never throw you away. She said she¡®lle to see you at noon. ¡± The boy was just two¨Cyears¨Cold and could not think for himself yet. However, the closest people to liim were his mother and his aunt. Since his aunt said that his mother was not throwing him away, he believed her and was relieved. He was willing to y a little now. On the way back to the store, Mrs. Lane managed to coax Sonny into ying together. When Zachary stopped the car when they reached the store, it was Mrs. Lane who carried Sonny out of the car. Serenity was relieved and said to her husband, ¡°Mr. York, the nanny you found is great with children. She got Sonny to open up to her so quickly. ¡± ¡°Mrs. Lane is a wonderful nanny. Whether it¡®s household chores, grocery shopping and cooking, or taking care of children and tutoring their school work, she¡®s great at all of it. ¡± ¡°Let¡®s give her a pay raise if she does a good job. ¡± Serenity¡®s online store was doing well, so her wallet was bulging a little. She was more than happy to raise Mrs. Lane¡®s sry if thetter did a good job. ¡°Sure. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Serenity pushed open the car door to get out. She then thought of something and turned back to Zachary, saying, ¡°Mr. York, turn your face here. ¡± Zachary did as she said and asked, ¡°What¡±. A soft and delicate kiss suddenly fell on his face. Zachary¡®s eyes widened. After Serenity kissed him gently, twice at that, she hurriedly pushed open the car door to get out. However, his hands were faster. He grabbed her arm, dragging her back into the car. His body twisted as much as he could, and he held her tightly before pressing a domineering kiss on her lips. After the kiss, Serenity said with a forcedposure, ¡°Your kissing skills are improving. I enjoyed that. ¡± She pushed open the car door and calmly got out. She turned around and waved to the man who was inside the car, and said with a smile, ¡°Bye, Mr. York. ¡± Zachary watched as she stepped into the store at a leisurely pace. When she was out of his sight, she dashed into the washroom. As soon as the door closed, she washed her face with water. She felt her cheeks burning up. What seemed like a long timeter, when her face was no longer red when she looked in the mirror, she pulled out a napkin and wiped her face repeatedly. She then calmly walked out of the washroom. All three of them, Mrs. Lane, Sonny, and Jasmine were staring at her. ¡°What are you looking at me like that for? I urgently needed the loo, okay? Anyone can do a hundred¨C meter sprint when it¡®s urgent. ¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°I thought you encountered a beast outside so I rushed to get a broom to fight it off, only to see Mr. York looking at something in the car mirror. He left when he saw me run outside with a broom. ¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°That man¡­ Chapter 367 Chapter 367 Chapter 367 After leaving Wiltspoon School in his national MPV, he stopped at huis usual spot and ordered his bodyguards to drive the MPV while he got into his Rolls Royce. On the way to thepany, he called Sam and asked him to arrange for someone to send a booster seat over. To Zachary¡®s surprise, Elisa was waiting in front of his office building again, but she was not blocking his way anymore. She just quietly stood by the side and watched his car entering the building It was hard for Elisa to let go of her love for Zachary. She told herself that she would see him again today, and never again. However, if she found out that he was not actually married and only wore the ring to make her give up on him, she would make aeback. After Zachary¡®s motorcade drove into the building, the gate of York Corporation closed soon after. When the Rolls Royce was out of her sight, she stood for a while longer before turning around and returning to her car despondently. It took a while before she started the car. She first drove very slowly, but then she suddenly picked up speed and sped away. Whenever Elisa was in a bad mood, she would go shopping. Two hourster, her car stopped in front of Serenity¡®s store. Jasmine heard the noise outside and came out for a look. She just ¨C so happened to see Elisa getting out of the car, and she walked over with a smile. ¡°Ms. Stone, you¡®re here. ¡± Elisa went on a two¨Chour long shopping spree and was in a much better mood. When she saw Jasmine, she smiled and said, ¡°Ms. Sox, you¡®re just in time. Give me a hand. I bought so much stuff that it took up the entire backseat. Help me move them. ¡± Jasmine nced at the car, and her jaw dropped. ¡°Ms. Stone, what have you bought? There¡®s so much. ¡± ¡°I bought everything that caught my eye. I don¡®t even know what I bought. It¡®s probably everything from food, drinks, toys, and other stuff. ¡± She swiped stuff off the racks like she was crazy. Jasmine called Serenity. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. Serenity was also stunned. Then, at Elisa¡®s request, the three girls carried everything from the car into the store. ¡°The toys are for Sonny. ¡± Elisa remembered nothing except the toys. She wanted to be close to Sonny. The little boy was utterly adorable, so she bought plenty of toys for him. There were those that flew in the air, crawled on the ground, and those that swam in water. Serenity looked at the tworge boxes of toys andughed. ¡°When Sonny is a little older, he¡®ll be able to open up a toy shop without stocking up anymore. Even if he only sells the toys you gave him, his business will be able tost for a long time. ¡± Elisa sat down and said, ¡°I like Sonny, so I bought toys for him. You guys spoil him your way, and I spoil him my way. Serenity, your nephew is just too cute. If I had such a cute nephew as well, I¡®d pluck the moon out of the sky for him if that¡®s what he wanted. ¡°Unfortunately, my mom only gave birth to one daughter, me. The only nephews I have will be from my brothers. ¡± Out of her two brothers, her eldest brother was married, but the couple was still in their honeymoon phase and did not want to have a child to intrude on their lovey¨Cdovey time. As for her second brother, she wondered if he even had a girlfriend. Sonny slid down from Mrs. Lane¡®s arMs. Sonny¡®s eyes grew dizzy when he saw the bulk of toys. He was frazzled and could not decide which to y. Snowball crouched in front of the box with Sonny. Serenity found that Snowball liked Sonny more than her. As for her two pet cats, they would jump on the shelves to sleep after they were fed, and fight with each other when they woke up. asionally, one of them would jump into Serenity¡®s arMs. Serenity poured Elisa a cup of warm water and asked, ¡°What made you buy so many ings?¡± ¡°I shop when I¡®m in a bad mood and I buy everything that pleases me. Now that I¡®m calm again, I suddenly feel that I don¡®t need these, so I¡®m giving them to you and Ms. Sox. I don¡®t mean anything else by that. I just think that my mom will scold me for wasting money if I bring them home. ¡± Chapter 368 Chapter 368 Chapter 368 ¡°You¡®ll be doing me a favor by epting it. Help a girl out, will you?¡± Elisa said as she made a yful pleading gesture. The Stone family liad plenty of money, but Audrey grew up in an orphanage. Even though it had been decades since she married into a wealthy family, she was still frugal. She hated it when Elisa spent money indiscriminately. Serenity thought, ¡®The rich really are willful!¡® Jasmine felt that she herself was quite extravagant too when it came to shopping, butpared to a true wealthydy like Elisa, it was likened toparing an ant to an elephant. ¡°Serenity, who¡®s thatdy?¡± Elisa asked Serenity after seeing Mrs. Lane. ¡°I hired her to take care of Sonny. Jasmine and I are busy sometimes, and I worry that Sonny might run out of the shop, so I got someone to look after him. That way, we can both be at ease. ¡± Serenity was taki. g care of another person¡®s child. Even if he was her nephew, it was a heavy responsibility. She could not afford to be careless when taking care of Sonny. ¡°That¡®s true. ¡± Elisa did notment much about Mrs. Lane. Serenity asked with concern, ¡°Why were you in a bad mood, Ms. Stone?¡± ¡°Just call me Elisa. I¡®m in a bad mood because I failed my goal. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Elisa listed the cup of water that Serenity had poured for her, took two sips, and said, ¡°Mr. York wore a wedding ring. ¡± ¡°Huh?¡± Serenity was astonished. Even Mrs. Lane looked over. UL She tried to recall when she saw Mr. Zachary in the morning. She did not see a wedding ring on his finger. His fingers werepletely unadorned. The same went for Serenity¡®s fingers. Jasmine was also in disbelief and asked, ¡°Mr. York is married? I¡®ve never heard of that. With his status, his wedding would definitely cause a sensation in the city if he got married. The reporters in Wiltspoon would go to town on the news. ¡± After a moment of silence, Elisa said sadly, ¡°I didn¡®t hear of his marriage either, but he really was wearing a wedding ring on the ring finger of his left hand. It¡®s so dazzling that there¡®s no way I was mistaken. ¡± ¡°That¡®s¡­¡± Serenity was at a ¡® ss for words. She could tell that Elisa truly loved the heir of the York family. She supported and encouraged Elisa, and even taught her tips and tricks to pursue her true love. However, Elisa said that the man was married. Serenity felt her cheeks burn. She actually taught Elisa how to be a homewrecker and destroy someone else¡®s marriage. If Mr. York¡®s wife were to find out that she was teaching Elisa how to pursue her husband, she would definitelye after Serenity with a forty¨Cmeter¨Clong knife and chop her into minced meat. Then again, how was it possible that there was no news of Mr. York¡®s marriage? If there was just the slightest rumor about it, she would not have encouraged Elisa to pursue him. ¡°I¡¯ll never be a mistress. Regardless of whether he¡®s really married or not, as long as he¡®s wearing a wedding ring that deres his marital status, I won¡®t bother him!¡± Elisa spoke firmly. However, her heart hurt like it was being cut by a thousand knives! Chapter 369 Chapter 369 Chapter 369 Serenity patted the back of Elisa¡®s hand andforted her. ¡± You¡®re a good girl, Elisa. Give up the man who doesn¡®t belong to you, and you¡®ll find happiness at your next stop. ¡± Elisa pursed her lips. Her eyes reddened, but she stubbornly wiped away the tears at the corners of her eyes and forced a cheerful expression. ¡°Yeah. As long as I want to marry someone, there are plenty of men lining up for my hand in marriage. I don¡®t have to steal another woman¡®s man!¡± Jasmine chimed in, ¡°Isn¡®t it nice to remain single? You¡®ll be free and unfettered. ¡± She had not fallen in love with a man before, so she could not imagine Elisa¡®s pain of not being able to attain her love. Elisa looked at her and thought of something. Her eyes were still red, but sheughed and said, ¡°Ms. Sox got famous in Wiltspoon for lying down on the ground at Mrs. Dawson¡®s party. ¡°You were really unk. Thinking about it now, you did that on purpose, right? I neard your family has been nagging you to get married. ¡± Jasmine chuckled. ¡°They¡®re much quieter now. My mom and aunt stopped getting together to prattle about which rich gentleman they¡®re going to marry me off to. ¡± Elisaughed. ¡°Your method is truly amazing. Your aunt is probably reluctant to mention you in front of other nobledies now. I¡®ve met your aunt before when I apanied my mom to banquets. Besides praising her own children, the only other person she talks about is you. ¡± ¡°Fortunately, I managed to break free. ¡± Jasmine remembered that night and smiled smugly. ¡°By the way, I almost forgot. Jasmine, my husband wants to set you up with his colleague. He¡®s about the same age and apparently is quite handsome. He also has a high sry and a good family background, but he has never dated before because he¡®s too busy with work. ¡± Jasmine said, ¡°¡­You two are matchmaking me?¡± ¡°He casually mentioned it to me. Judging by my husband¡®s description, that man¡®s conditions didn¡®t sound that bad. If you¡®re interested, I¡®ll ask him to arrange a meeting for you, but if you don¡®t want to, l¡®ll help you decline. ¡± Jasmine thought about it. This was the first time her best friend and her husband were ying her matchmaker. Furthermore, it was Mr. York¡®s colleague, which meant he was working in York Corporation. Solely based on these facts was enough to determine that this man was a professional elite and not a trust fund kid. There was no harm in meeting him. She would not let her friend¡®s kind intentions go to waste. ¡°Does he have any strengths and weaknesses?¡± ¡°I¡®ve told you about his strengths, so as for his weaknesses, he likes drama and the good ol¡® gossip. However, I think most people are like that to some extent. When we¡®re out and see a crowd by the roadside, we¡®ll be curious and go over to get in on the scoop. ¡± Serenity paused and added, ¡°He¡®s also talkative and glib tongued. ¡± Elisa teased Jasmine, ¡°Go and meet him, Jasmine. From how Serenity described him, I think this man is quite exceptional. You¡®ve probably killed your chances with wealthy families after ¨C your sprawling act at Mrs. Dawson¡®s party, so you should just go for a business elite instead. ¡± ¡°I¡®ve never wanted to marry into a rich family, and it¡®s not like I could marry into one even if I wanted to. Although I¡®m pretty, I¡¯m not exceptionally stunning. It¡®s better to marry an ordinary person, live an ordinary lise, and be happier. ¡± Most outsiders were not aware of what the marriage life of people from wealthy families was like. Jasmine saw how hard her aunt had it after marrying into a wealthy family. She did not want to follow in her aunt¡®s footsteps. Elisa was born with a silver spoon, so she knew that better than anyone else. ¡°Actually, it¡®s better to marry someone whose family status matches yours. If the gap is too big, it¡®ll be difficult to reconcile. The feelings of both parties may still run deep at the beginning of the marriage, so they might be able to tolerate each other. However, after a while when the passion diminishes, the problems stemming from the wealth gap would raise their heads. That will end up backfiring on the couple instead. ¡°The exception is if you¡®re extremely exceptional and can stand with power on your own two feet so no one dares to look down on you. My mom often says that if a woman doesn¡®t want to be belittled or bullied after marriage, they either have to be strong themselves, or their maiden family has to be strong. ¡± After a pause, she added, ¡°Some wealthy families don¡®t care about matching statuses and ce more importance on fate. Those elders won¡®t forcefully influence their children¡®s marriage. However, such families are few and far in between. ¡± Among the several wealthy families in Wiltspoon, the only family that could do that was the York family. Elisa knew that her own family could not do it. Her sister¨Cinw ¨C was bold and daring, but she was also from a wealthy family that was a match for the Stones. Although Audrey was raised in an orphanage, she was strong enough to conquer Darrell with her personal charm.Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 370 Chapter 370 Chapter 370 Before Clive had taken over Stone Group, Darrell¡®s voice was weaker than Audrey¡®s. The seniors in thepany were more than willing to defer to her. It was clear what status Audrey held in Stone Group. ¡°Yes yes yes, I also agree with Elisa. ¡± Jasmine felt that she and Elisa shared the same thoughts. Her mother and aunt had always wanted her to climb up the socialdder. Serenityughed. ¡°That¡®s why I found myself a man with simr status and had never expected to marry into a rich family. ¡± Zachary¡®s sry was a little higher than her ie, but he was still a sryman, so they could be considered to be on the same level. ¡°Since you all say so, ask your husband to arrange the date for me then, Serenity. I¡®ll meet with his colleague. Maybe this is our fate. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Serenity was quite thrilled to be able to help her friend find happiness. Mrs. Lane was listening in on the trio¡®s conversation about marriage and agreed with Elisa¡®s statement. Elisa and Serenity got along well, and Elisa did not act like the stereotypical arrogant and haughty wealthydy. Mrs. Lane felt that the world misunderstood Elisa. At the same time, she was worried about Serenity. Elisa had no idea that Serenity was the missus to the heir of the York family. Even Serenity herself was in the dark too. However, the truth woulde to light sooner orter. When that timees, what would happen to the two girls who had be friends? Would they turn against each other? At that thought, Mrs. Lane felt that Zachary was a bit hical to hide his identity for so long. Even if he wanted to conceal his identity to observe Serenity¡®s character, it had been almost two months. Was he still doubtful? However, Mrs. Lane only dared to keep those thoughts to herself and dared not say them out loud. Beep, beep Serenity¡®s phone received a WhatsApp message. She tapped on the app and saw a message sent by Zachary. He told her that he transferred fifteen thousand to their family living expenses card. He said he received a bonus of thirty thousand and gave her half for living expenses, while he kept the other half for himself. Serenity: (There¡®s no need to give so much for living expenses. ] Zachary: (Pay for Mrs. Lane¡®s sry using the card. ) Serenity replied with an OK emoji. The household expenses card was bound to Zachary¡®s bank ount. Since he said he transferred the money, Serenity did not check on it.N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. Chapter 371 Chapter 371 Chapter 371 ¡°Look at that sweet smile. Did your husband send you a message?¡± Jasmine teased her best friend. She was happy when she saw Serenity and Mr. York getting closer to each other. She was looking forward to the two having a wedding soon so she could be the bridesmaid at their wedding banquet. ¡°Our guest room doesn¡®t have a bed and cab yet. He received a bonus and transferred fifteen thousand for me to buy a bed, closet, bedding, and whatnot. ¡°Mrs. Lane, I¡®ll take you shopping after Sonny has his afternoon nap, and that¡®ll be after lunch. They¡®re for you, so you should pick them out yourself. ¡± Mrs. Laneughed. ¡°I¡®m not picky. I¡®ll be fine with just having a ce to stay. ¡± ¡°That won¡®t do. You have to livefortably. Your boss gave us money to buy stuff for you, so we don¡®t have to scrimp and save for him. Pick furniture that¡®s of good quality. ¡± Serenity thought that if Mrs. Lane did a good job, it meant a long term employment rtionship for them. They would be living together like a family, so they could not treat her unfairly. Looking at the time, Serenity asked Elisa, ¡°Are you staying for lunch?¡± El¨ªsa remembered that she would no longer be going to Wiltspoon Hotel to wait for Zachary, but she did not want to go home either. Thus, she answered casually, ¡°Sure, I¡®ll stay for lunch. ¡± Serenity told Mrs. Lane to cook for one more person. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡®ll go cook now, Ms. Hunt. ¡± Serenity watched her nephew y with toys happily and said, ¡°Go ahead. I¡®ll look after Sonny. ¡± As soon as Mrs. Lane entered the kitchen, she hurriedly took out her phone and sent a message to Zachary. (Mr. Zachary, Ms. Stone is here. Missus asked her to stay for lunch, and she agreed. ) Zachary transferred the money to Serenity after his meeting and went through several important documents. He was just about to pack up and leave work early to have lunch with his wife when he received the message from Mrs. Lane. He instantly felt as if he was doused in a basin of ice water, chilling him from head to toe. ¡°Elisa Stone, you really are like a ghost haunting us. ¡± She was either pestering him or hogging his wife. Tough luck for both of them to have met Elisa in this life. Zachary tossed the car keys back on the table and sat back down. Elisa was in Serenity¡®s store, so he naturally could not go. Ring ring ring¡­ His phone rang. It was from his grandmother. ¡°Nana. ¡± ¡°Zack, Elisa is in Serenity¡®s shop, so don¡®t go over for lunch. ¡± After a moment of silence, Zachary asked, ¡°How do you know?¡± ¡°I missed my granddaughter-inw and wanted to visit her, but I saw Elisa¡®s car parked in front of the store, so I quickly slipped away. ¡± Old Mrs. York sounded downhearted. With Elisa in the store, she could not even spend time with her granddaughter¨Cinw. ¡°It¡®s all your fault Zack. If not for you, I wouldn¡®t have to sneak around like this. It¡®s like I¡®m a thief. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment. ¡°Nana, I haven¡®t even gotten mad at Elisa hogging my wife, but you¡®re ming it on me?¡± ¡°Oh, did you just say ¡®my wife¡®? Did you two get closer? When will I be able to hold my great¨Cgranddaughter soon? ¡°Tell Serenity that our family doesn¡®t have enough daughters and let her be the first to give me a fat and chubby great granddaughter like her. Make sure she doesn¡®t turn out to be like you, or she won¡®t be cute. ¡±. It would be fine if it was a great¨Cgrandson like Zachary. Boys were colder and gave people a more dignified aura. However, it would not be cute for a girl to have an expressionless face. Old Mrs. York already disdained her eldest grandson¡®s stoic and icy look. She did not want to have a great¨Cgranddaughter who was just as cold as he was. Chapter 372 Chapter 372 Chapter 372 Zachary said after a brief pause, ¡°Nana, you really do think in the long run. Tell your sons to put in the effort and give you a granddaughter instead. It might be faster that way. ¡± Old Mrs. York instantlyughed and scolded him, ¡°If your grandfather was still alive, would you say that it¡®ll be quicker for us to try for a daughter instead? Your parents, aunts, and uncles are already old. How can they give birth to more children? They didn¡®t manage to get a daughter when they were young, so they can only pin their hopes for a granddaughter now. ¡± ¡°My third uncle and aunt are only in their forties. I think they can still try. ¡± If his third uncle and aunt were here, they would say, ¡°Zachary, you traitor!¡± ¡°Are you busy now?¡± ¡°I¡®m on the phone with my Nana. ¡± ¡°Look, that¡®s what I mean. You¡®re not cute at all. You¡®re not busy, right? If you¡®re not, I¡®ll go to the office to find you. Let¡®s go shopping. ¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. ¡°I¡®m working, Nana. ¡± ¡°Thepany won¡®t close down even without you. I¡®m asking you toe shopping with me for your own good. You have to get used to shopping with women. Only then will you have the patience to apany Serenity. It¡®s an opportunity for you to gain experience, but you don¡®t know how to appreciate my good intentions. ¡± The corners of Zachary¡®s mouth twitched, and he said in exasperation, ¡°Tell Callum to go with you. I have a lunch appointment at noon. ¡± ¡°Didn¡®t you cancel it?¡± He was silent for a moment and said, ¡°My wife is currently being upied, so I have no choice but to carry on with the lunch appointment. ¡± ¡°Haha, you rascal! Look at yourself! What did I say?¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Fine, I won¡®t take up any more of your time. I¡®ll ask your third brother to have a stroll with me. Out of all your brothers and cousins, your third cousin brother is the most gifted at talking. I don¡®t have to worry about being bored with him around. ¡± Old Mrs. York hung up the phone when she was done talking. She managed to gain something today. At the very least, she learned that her eldest grandson was starting to be enlightened. She sighed and thought, ¡®I got so worried about that brat¡®s lifelong happiness that my hair¡®s turning gray. ¡® Zachary stared at his phone for a moment and finally sent a message to Serenity, telling her that he had to eat with a client at noon and could not go over. An instant reply came from Serenity. Serenity: (OK. ) Zachary¡®s expression fell. ¡®Am I that unweed to go over for lunch with her? ¡®She forgot whose wife she is now that she has Elisa to apany her. ¡¯ The petty and jealous man forgot what he had stressed over himself several times. He said he would never be a green¨Ceyed monster, but he was now feeling exactly that because of Elisa. In fact, he could have called Clive and told him to bring Elisa back. However, he was afraid if he did so, Elisa would find out that Serenity was his wife. He leaned back on the ck swivel chair and frowned tightly. He finally knew what it was like to shoot himself in the foot. After moping about for a little while, he put away his gloom and picked up the phone to call Wiltspoon Hotel to arrange the delivery of a few of his wife¡®s favorite dishes over to her. She invited a guest for lunch, so he should add some good food to the spread.Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had no clue that her asking Elisa to eat in the store was the reason Zachary could note over. She and Jasmine packed up the items that Elisa bought. The students were alm st out of ss, so the shop¡®s patrons would not be able to move about freely if the items were piled up there. Elisa, on the other hand, was ying with Sonny in her arMs. ¡°Sonny, Sonny. ¡± Olivia¡®s shrill voice was heard suddenly. Serenity¡®s expression turned sullen. Chapter 373 Chapter 373 Chapter 373 Olivia soon walked in while holding Chelsea¡®s third child. Chelsea was not with her. She probably went back to work. ¡°Sonny, Lucas is here to y with you. ¡± Olivia called out to Sonny while holding her other grandson. ¡°Serenity, Ms. Sox. ¡± She smiled and greeted Serenity and Jasinine. She nced at them a few more times when they saw the two packing up. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Her attention was soon drawn to Elisa. Elisa did not put Sonny down and asked him, ¡°Who is she, Sonny?¡± Serenity straightened up and said in a light tone, ¡°Why are you here, Aunty?¡± Then, she told Elisa, ¡°She¡®s my sister¡®s mother¨Cinw and Sonny¡®s grandr her. ¡± She emphasized on the word ¡°grandmother¡±. Elisa looked at Lucas, who Olivia was holding, then looked at Sonny. Sonny only greeted his grandmother once and nothing else. He was obviously not close to his grandmother. She guessed the rtionship between Liberty and her mother¨Cinw was not pleasant. ¡°Sonny usually has no ymates, so I went back and brought Lucas over today to y with him. ¡± Olivia exined briefly. When her grandson tried to break free from her to y with the two big boxes of toys, she let go and let Lucas grab the toys by himself. ¡°They¡®re mine. ¡± Little children were protective over what belonged to them. Sonny was no exception. Lucas liked to snatch his things the most. If he refused, Lucas would hit liim. If he cried, his aunt would say that he could not cry because he was a boy. She even said that Lucas was just ying with his toys and would not take them away. Sonny did not believe his aunt¡®s words. He was young and could not understand many things, but Sonny knew that Lucas would take along his toys every time thetter left. Even if Lucas did not take them away, he would destroy the toys. Sonny slipped down from Elisa¡®s arms to the floor and went to pull Lucas, not letting thetter y with his toys. ¡°Sonny, don¡®t push your brother. There are so many toys. You two brothers can y together. ¡® When Olivia saw Sonny pushing Lucas, she instinctively went to pull Sonny away, not letting him push Lucas. The three girls saw what Olivia did and felt a little angry. Elisa was the closest to Sonny. She stood up and pulled Sonny back from Olivia¡®s hands. Then, she pulled the box of toys that had not been packed yet closer to her. Her pretty face was cold as she said, ¡°Lady, how do you teach your children? Taking other people¡®s things without their consent is stealing. ¡°Besides, I bought all these for Sonny, so they belong to Sonny. If he doesn¡®t want to let Lucas y with them, then Lucas doesn¡®t get to. If Lucas wants to y, he can go buy them himself. ¡± When Lucas saw that Elisa refused him ying with the toys, he immediatelyy on the ground and rolled around, crying while coughing ¡°Lucas, Lucas!¡± Olivia hurriedly pulled her grandson up and asked Serenity, ¡°Who is that woman, Serenity? Why is she bickering with a child? Sonny and Lucas are close cousins. What¡®s wrong with Lucas ying with his brother¡®s toys?¡± Serenity¡®s expression was sullen, and her tone was not pleasant. ¡° Sonny¡®s toys belong to him. They can only y together if Sonny is willing to let Lucas y. If he¡®s not willing, then Lucas can¡®t y. ¡± ¡°Sonny was raised badly by you two sisters. He doesn¡®t know how to love his own brother. ¡± Olivia used angrily. Chapter 374 Chapter 374 Chapter 374 Serenity said coldly, ¡°Who is Lucas? What has he got to do with me? Sonny is my nephew. I can¡®t possibly let him suffer to coax someone else¡®s child. What did Sonny do wrong? It¡®s your other grandson who was raised badly. He always bullies Sonny, steals his toys, beats him, and brings his toys back home. You¡®re their grandmother, right? Are you blind? ¡°Or is this what you usually teach him? Olivia, Lucas is your grandson, but so is Sonny. You¡®re too biased!¡± Olivia was speechless. She responded, ¡°Sonny is still young, Serenity. Besides, Sonny has so many toys. What¡®s wrong with giving Lucas one or two to y with? Look, Sonny, your brother is crying. Share some toys with him to y together, okay?¡± Sonny hesitated. Elisa said to him, ¡°Sonny, you don¡®t have to force yourself if you don¡®t want to share. If he likes to cry, he can cry as much as he wants. Since he wants to roll around and clean the floor, we¡®ll let him do as he pleases. It¡®ll save your Aunt Seren the need to mop the floor. ¡± Sonny said softly, ¡°Lucas is bad. ¡± Lucas left a bad impression on him. ¡°If Lucas is bad, then don¡®t y with him. Lady, please take your precious grandson out. My friend¡®s store is small and not spacious enough. Take him outside, and he can roll around as much as he pleases. ¡± Serenity was not willing to let her nephew suffer to satisfy someone else¡®s child. Elisa was no different. She was the type to do whatever she wanted. If someone dared to grumble about it, she was always ready to give them a tight p. ¡°Be good, Lucas. Get up and let¡®s go. Don¡®t care about his toys. Grandma will buy you something that¡®s more fun. ¡± Olivia was infuriated by Elisa and Serenity, but she was also feeling distressed over her grandson rolling on the ground. She squatted and pulled her grandson while coaxing him. ¡°No, I want Sonny¡®s toys!¡± Lucas was spoiled rotten and insisted on having Sonny¡®s toys. ¡°Come on, Lucas. Sonny¡®s toys aren¡®t fun. Grandma will buy you something better, okay?¡± ¡°No! I want Sonny¡®s! I want Sonny¡®s!¡± Lucas, who was pulled up by Olivia,y back down on the ground and continued to wail and roll around, coughing from time to time. Olivia was angry, distressed, and helpless. Serenity did not like her and neither did she like Serenity. Besides, those toys did belong to Sonny, and Sonny was also her grandson. Suddenly, Lucas stopped rolling around. He got up from the ground, rushed to Sonny, and purposely coughed hard at Sonny. Serenity took a step forward and picked Lucas up before shoving him in Olivia¡®s arMs. She said coldly, ¡°Olivia, please take him away now. He¡®s making too much noise. ¡± Elisa hurriedly drew tissues to help Sonny wipe his mouth and face. Lucas spat a little at Sonny when he coughed at thetter, which disgusted Elisa. Now in his grandmother¡®s arms, Lucas yelled, ¡°My mom said I¡®m sick. As long as I cough at Sonny, he¡®ll be sick like me, and Aunt Liberty can¡®t go work. ¡± Olivia quickly covered her grandson¡®s mouth, but it was toote. Serenity turned around instantly to get a broom to chase the pair of grandmother and grandson out. Olivia saw that she was in a bad situation and ran outside with her grandson. Elisa and Jasmine were in sync. Both of them took off their shoes and threw them at Olivia¡®s back. They were both wearing high heels, and all those shoes hit Olivia¡®s back. Olivia was in pain, but she did not dare to stop and fled with her grandson in her arMs. Serenity came out with a broom and saw that Olivia had already fled with Lucas to the road outside her shop. She did not chase after them since there were too many vehicles on the road. She would get in trouble if they got hit by a car while being chased by her. Elisa and Jasmine both hopped out, picked up their shoes, and put them back on. Elisa asked, ¡°Serenity, is that really Sonny¡®s grandmother? She¡®s too vicious!¡±Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 375 Chapter 375 Chapter 375 Serenity¡®s expression was gloomy. ¡°I also wished that she was his step¨Cgrandmother. That way, it would not be that hurtful. Unfortunately, she¡®s his real grandmother. ¡± Her nephew¡®s grandmother and her own grandmother wereparable to each other. After a pause, she added, ¡°That old woman brought Lucas over so he could infect Sonny. If Sonny gets sick, my sister will be too worried to go to work. She¡®ll definitely take time off to take care of Sonny, but she has just started her job. If she keeps taking time off, it¡®ll be difficult for her to keep this job. ¡± The Brown family was really doing everything to keep her sister from returning to the workce. Now that her sister had a job, she should bring forward her ns to divorce. The earlier she divorced, the faster she could get a new lease on life. ¡°Serenity, why does your sister¡®s mother¨Cinw not want her to go to work?¡± Elisa asked. Serenity walked back with the broom. When she saw Sonny walk out, she bent down to pick her nephew up with one hand, and continued walking as she exined, ¡°Her upstanding sister¨Cinw, Chelsea, wants to send her two children to a school in the city. The house my sister lives in is in the school¡®s catchment area. Chelsea had her eyes set on that house. ¡°She wants my scumbag brother¨Cinw to transfer ownership of that house to her name so it¡®s convenient for her two children to enroll into a better high school, but she lives in a unit provided by ¨C thepany. She also has to go to work, so it¡®s inconvenient for her to pick up and drop off her children. She wants my sister to help with the school run, cook for them, and help them with their homework. My sister refused. ¡°My sister finally found a job and went to work, but they came up with such a trick to force her into agreeing to help. Her mother¨Cinw ispletely biased toward her sister¨Cinw. Even my brother¨Cinw is the same. He always helps his sister. ¡°In the past, they treated my sister very well, and she thought she had married the right person. It wasn¡®t that bad after the marriage either, but after she gave birth to Sonny, they started revealing their true colors. Maybe they thought it was fine to do so because my sister and her husband have a child now. They keep saying that my sister doesn¡®t do anything at home and only raises the child. And that she doesn¡®t earn money but only knows how to spend money. They also say that it¡®s useless that my sister studied so much when she can¡®t even earn money. ¡± Elisa was silent for a while. ¡°The people in my circle all say that I¡®m awful, butpared to your sister¡®s inws, I think that I¡®m a saint. At least, I don¡®t have bad intentions. I just have a bad temper sometimes. The encounter just now really opened her eyes. It was no wonder Sonny was taken care of by his aunt despite him having grandparents. Jasmine chimed in, ¡°You¡®ve only met one of them. If you deal with the Brown family for a long time, it¡®ll open your eyes to a whole new world. They¡®repletely absurd. The entire family is especially good at pretending. Liberty and Sonny¡®s father have known each other for twelve years. They dated for seven years and have been married for more than three years, but they were able to pretend all the while superbly. ¡± Elisa felt chills down her spine as she listened. They could probably win awards with their acting. It was no wonder Liberty was tricked so badly. If it were Elisa, she would most likely be tricked too. ¡°Serenity, that Lucas boy coughied on Sonny. Will Sonny be infected?¡± Elisa touched Sonny¡®s little face and added tenderly, ¡°He¡®s so cute and smart. Why don¡®t his grandparents dote on him? Sonny, call me Aunty in the future. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. I promise that no one will dare to bully you again. ¡± Sonny stretched out his hands for Elisa to hug him. Elisa immediately picked him up. ¡°You¡®re such an adorable child. My mom would love you if she sees you. ¡± Her mother was looking forward to her brother and sister¨Cinw having a child, but unfortunately, the couple had no ns to have a baby yet. Serenity put the broom back and said, ¡°Sonny¡®s immune system is strong. He hasn¡®t been in contact with Lucas for long, so he should not have gotten infected. ¡± Olivia deliberately brought Lucas over with the intention of infecting Sonny with Lucas¡®s cold. Serenity did not hide what happened from her sister. When Liberty came over at noon, Serenity told her about it after lunch. Liberty was furious. She wrapped her arms around her son and said angrily, ¡°I don¡®t expect them to take care of Sonny for me, but I can¡®t believe they did this to us just so their other grandchildren can go to a good school. Chapter 376 Chapter 376 Chapter 376 ¡°Liberty, now that you have a job, you can ask Hank for a divorce. ¡± Serenity advised her sister to file for a divorce as soon as possible. Jasmine and Elisa both echoed, ¡°Divorce early and start a new. ¡± Liberty looked down at her son¡®s tender little face and nodded firmly. ¡°I¡®ll wait for Hank to get off work tonight and ask him for a divorce. ¡± She already had the evidence of Hank¡®s affair. When she first got the evidence, she did not immediately fall out with him because she was still unemployed and without an ie. It would not be conducive for her to fight for the custody of her son. The New Year is around the corner. Initially, she wanted to wait until she got her first paycheck before bringing up the divorce. However, her mother¨Cinw¡®s behavior today made her unable to tolerate it anymo¡­ She could bear with it no matter how they treated her, but she could not tolerate them harming Sonny! When her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw came over two days ago, she heard Chelsea telling Hank that Lucas had a flu and had not recovered yet. Her father¨Cinw was worried that Lucas would infect Sonny, so he did not let Chelsea bring Lucas along. She did not expect her mother¨Cinw to go back while she was at work and bring the still¨Csick Lucas back with the intention of letting him infect Sonny with the flu. They wanted her to be out ofmission due to worry, or better yet, lose her job entirely. That was truly a vicious n. All because they did not want her to go to work so she could help take care of Chelsea¡®s children? In their dreams! ¡°Liberty. ¡± Elisa looked at the chubby Liberty and felt that thetter gave her a sense of familiarity. That sense gave her a strong feeling of wanting to be close to Liberty. ¡®How strange. ¡®Were Serenity, Liberty, and I sisters in our past life?¡® Elisa was someone who acted ording to her heart. She liked to be close to the Hunt sisters, so she followed her wishes and did not overthink it. She said, ¡°Liberty, tell me if you need to file awsuit for the divorce. I¡®ll get the bestwyer to help you with it. ¡°You have to fight to the end for what you deserve. Don¡®t let them off easy. Also, you have to fight for Sonny¡®s custody. You can¡®t give Sonny to them when he has such a bad grandmother. ¡± Liberty said gratefully, ¡°Thank you so much, Ms. Stone. I¡®ll do my best to get custody of Sonny. ¡± Her son was the reason she was working so hard. Elisa said boldly, ¡°Sonny calls me Aunty, so he¡®s my nephew now. I¡®ll protect you and your son¡®s future. I¡®d like to see who would dare bully the people under my wing. ¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°Elisa, if you lived in ancient times, you¡®d definitely be a valiant female warrior. ¡± Elisa blushed and said, ¡°Don¡®t tter me, Jasmine. I know very well what kind of person I am. I take first impressions very seriously. If I don¡®t like how a person looks, I¡®ll dislike them even if they¡®re from the Stone family too. ¡± Otherwise, where did her reputation of being wild and capriciouse from? ¡°That¡®s true. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. It¡®s fate that brings people together. ¡± Jasmine took her best friend¡®s arm. ¡°Serenity and I are linked by fate. It¡®s a shame that I¡®m not a man. ¡± Serenity could not help butugh. With her sister, Jasmine, and Elisa supporting her, Liberty decided to bring up the divorce to Hank at night. Chapter 377 Chapter 377 Chapter 377 Sonny soon fell asleep in his mother¡®s arMs. Liberty took the opportunity of him sleeping and handed him over to her sister. She was extremely grateful that Serenity and her husband hired Mrs. Lane to help her take good care of Sonny. She could not stand on her own feet yet, but she would remember Serenity and Zachary¡®s kindness. She would repay them well when she could stand on her own again. Liberty then went to work. Elisa received a phone call from a friend. The others did not know what the friend said, but after Elisa took the call, she said goodbye to Serenity and Jasmine before leaving in a hurry. ¡°Jasmine, you watch the shop with Sonny first. I¡®ll take Mrs. Lane to buy some bedding products. ¡± Serenity had not forgotten that she had to buy a bed, cabs, and bedding for Mrs. Lane. ¡°Sure. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Jasmine agreed easily. Business would be idle until the students finished their sses in the evening. She would always read novels to pass the time. Mrs. Lane said, ¡°Ms. Hunt, you can go out and buy it yourself. Sonny will need someone to look after him when he wakes upter. ¡± Mrs. Lane was heartbroken for Sonny when she learned that he had such a grandmother. In Elisa¡®s words, why was he not doted on when he was so cute? Mrs. Lane thought, ¡®Liberty¡®s inws treated Sonny this way despite him being a boy. I don¡®t know what would happen if she gave birth to a girl instead. ¡®Fortunately, she¡®s getting divorced. ¡®It¡®s better to leave. ¡®She should have divorced a long time ago with that kind of family. ¡® Since Mrs. Lane insisted on staying, Serenity drove her car out by herself to help Mrs. Lane buy a bed and cab. She spent an entire afternoon shopping After rushing back to the store in the evening and bracing through the peak hours, her sister returned from work to pick Sonny up. Jasmine went home too, so it was just Mrs. Lane and Serenity guarding the store. Half an hourter, Zachary came. ¡°You¡®re not working overtime?¡± Serenity saw her husband walk in with calm and steady steps. His aura was so imposing that she was a little mesmerized. This man¡®s face was indeed too handsome. He was full of masculine charm. ¡°I got off work after finishing everything on hand. ¡± ¡°Mr. York,¡± Mrs. Lane greeted him. Zachary nodded at her and pulled a chair over¡®to sit in front of Serenity. Serenity withdrew her admiring eyes and started to work on her crafts again. Zachary was slightly disappointed. When he came in, he clearly saw the girl looking at him with adoration. However, after just exchanging a few words, she resumed her crafting. It seemed like his personal charm was not enough. He failed to charm Serenity and make her swoon. After looking at her for a long time, he asked in a warm and deep voice, ¡°How¡®s your online store doing recently?¡± ¡°In short, it¡®s great. Long story, it¡®s really great!¡± Zachary was amused by her answer. ¡°It¡®s good if business is doing well, but don¡®t work too hard. If you get tired¡­¡± ¡®My heart will ache. He did not say thest few words. He was a little annoyed. Why could he not be brazen and say whatever he wanted to say? Perhaps it was because he was inexperienced. Who should he ask to gain experience? Chapter 378 Chapter 378 Chapter 378 Unfortunately, the handful of close friends he had were just as inexperienced as he was. He could not ask Nana for a few tricks in private either. She wouldugh at him. He thought of how he stubbornly said to Nana that he would not chase after his wife. Now, he was feeling his cheeks burn in embarrassment. However, he did not actually have to chase after his wife. Serenity was already his wife! ¡°Thank you for your concern, Mr. York. I¡®ll be mindful. ¡± Serenity¡®s dexterous hands were nimbly crafting a car. ¡°Mr. York, you take Mrs. Lane home first. Also, don¡®t forget to take Snowball and the others with you. ¡± Zachary¡®s expression tightened. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I won¡®t take the three furballs. ¡± ¡°Then let Mrs. Lane take them. The store¡®s not busy now, so you two can¡®t help me much here anyway. Why not go home and let Mrs. Lane clean up her room?¡± ¡°You¡®re chasing me away!¡± Serenity nced up at him and then looked down again to continue working. She said in amusement, ¡°Mr. York, I realized that you¡®re quite a sensitive person. I¡®m telling the truth, not chasing you away. Tell me. What can you do to help me by staying here?¡± Zachary tensed his face and did not speak. He did not know how to weave crafts. If he helped her to sell books, she would say that his face was too stern and would scare the students away. Zachary had to admit that he really could not help her here. ¡®Why did Nana find me such a capable wise? I don¡®t even have the chance to show off!! Zachary grumbled about his nana in his heart. If Old Mrs. York was here, she would say, ¡°Serenity and you signed a six¨Cmonth agreement and will divorce once the time is up anyway. ¡± Zachary fell silent Was she really his nana? Mrs. Lane quickly said, ¡°Ms. Hunt, I only brought a few sets of clothes over. There¡®s nothing I need to unpack, so there¡®s no rush to go back. ¡± Since the two were unwilling to leave, Serenity did not say more. Mrs. Lane hid behind a bookshelf in the corner and read a book so as not to be the third wheel. However, her ears were perked up as she listened carefully to the conversation between the young couple. If something went wrong, she could step in to save the day. Zachary was arrogant, clumsy in speech, and had no skills in appealing to a girl. Even if he realized that he cared for Serenity, he would not be able to express it to her with sweet words. Mrs. Lane felt it would be more practical to pray for pigs to sprout wings and start flying, rather than counting on Zachary to sweet talk into making Serenity happy. Zachary silently watched Serenity work. Serenity suddenly asked him, ¡°Mr. York, your big boss is the heir of the York family. Is he married?¡± Zachary¡®s dark eyes flickered. He did not immediately answer and waited for her to continue. ¡°Everyone in Wiltspoon knows that Elisa likes your boss, and I¡®ve given her a few tips on how to pursue him. Unexpectedly, she came over this morning and said that she saw Mr. York wore a wedding band on the ring finger of his left hand. ¡°Since he¡®s yourpany¡®s CEO, do you have any insider information? Did Mr. York really get married?¡± Zachary looked at his bare fingers. He only wore the ring when he was faced with Elisa. ¡°We don¡®t have a definite answer to that either, but I was fortunate enough to be able to attend the meeting today. Although I sat at the very end of the table and was far from the boss, I have excellent eyesight, so I did see him wear a ring on his left finger. ¡± Serenity looked¡® p at him, met his dark eyes, and asked nosily,¡± Do you know who his wife is?¡± Zachary shook his head. ¡°No. Although I¡®m one of the executives of thepany, I¡®m not one of his trusted aides, so I¡®m not privy to matters like that. ¡± After a pause, he added, ¡°Someone asked Mr. Bucham about it upon hearing the news. Mr. Bucham is my boss¡®s closest friend. ¡°However, Mr. Bucham didn¡®t say who the boss¡®s wife was either. He only said that the boss was indeed married and spoiled his wife very much. ¡± In the corner, Mrs. Lane wanted to burst outughing. ¡®Mr. Zachary, you sure know how to paint yourself in a good light. ¡®It¡®s as clear as day that you¡®re lying to your wife, but you¡®re saying that you spoil her¡­¡® Chapter 379 Chapter 379 she had to apologize to Elisa. Mr. York in fact had a wise. Elisa should give up. She was a good girl. Serenity hoped that Elisa could let go of her feelings for Mr. York as soon as possible, and look for her happiness that belonged to her. ¡°Since Mr. York is married, why wasn¡®t there any news?¡± Even Elisa did not know about it. ¡°It should be to protect his wife. Think about it. Our boss is young, handsome, promising, and rich. Any woman who sees him in real life would fall head over heels for his charm. ¡°Although no other woman except Ms. Stone has the courage to openly confess to him and pursue him, it doesn¡®t mean that there aren¡®t people who adore him. He¡®s worried that exposing his beloved wife¡®s identity and appearance would bring trouble for her. He¡®s also afraid that someone would hurt his wife while he¡®s not paying attention. ¡± ¡°I don¡®t know about the others, but Elisa is definitely not that kind of person. She¡®s a good girl who¡®s misunderstood to the core by the outside world. Since Mr. York doesn¡®t like her, I guess they¡®re only destined to be just friends. ¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°I hope she can get over it soon. There are plenty of good men in the world. There¡®s no need to get so hung up on Mr. York. ¡± Zachary did not say anything. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°By the way, have you seen your boss¡®s face before? Is he really that handsome? Is he old?¡± Zachary¡®s mouth twitched. ¡®Why does she keep thinking of me as an old man? ¡®I¡®m only thirty. I¡®m still young for a man. ¡® ¡°He¡®s undeniably handsome and young. In short, he¡®s really good looking and has a lot of masculine charm. If I were a woman, I¡¯d like my boss too. ¡± Serenity smiled cheekily. ¡°How do youpare to him?¡± Zachary was silent for a moment. ¡°I think, maybe, I look a little better than him. ¡± Sheughed. ¡°Are you sure you¡®re not just ttering yourself? I haven¡®t seen Mr. York before, so I can¡®t help you compare. ¡± In the same corner, Mrs. Lane covered her mouth and wasughing so hard that her stomach hurt. ¡®So that¡®s how Mr. Zachary acts in front of the missus. ¡® ¡°Serenity, are you interested in Mr. York?¡± ¡°No. He¡¯s someone I¡®ll never meet in my life. Why would I be interested in him? If not for Elisa always gossiping about him in front of me, I wouldn¡®t even know that he exists. ¡± Zachary stopped talking. ¡°By the way, will they hold a wedding? I think Wiltspoon¡®s entertainment journalists will be worked to the bone if they have a wedding. ¡± After a moment o silence, he said, ¡°Mr. Bucham said that our boss spoils his wife. A man who spoils his wife won¡®t let her suffer. He¡®ll ¨C definitely hold a grand wedding. We just don¡®t know when the wedding will be held. Maybe they haven¡®t picked a good day yet. ¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°Yeah, it¡®s important to choose a good date for the wedding ¡°Also, Jasmine is willing to meet with your colleague. Could you arrange a time for them to meet?¡± ¡°Saturday afternoon. ¡± LLL He was Josh¡®s ve driver during workdays and thetter could not spare the time to go on a blind date. There was no need to work on weekends, so time could be arranged then. Serenity had no problems with the timing. After the handmade copper wire car waspleted, she stopped working. Seeing this, Zachary asked somewhat apologetically, ¡°Am I disturbing you here? Chapter 380 Chapter 380 Chapter 380 It was likely that she usually closed the storete to rush her crafts. Serenity looked at him. ¡°You don¡®t have that much of an impact. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°My sister will be bringing up the divorce to Hank tonight. I¡®m a little worried. ¡± ¡°Shall I go there with you?¡± Serenity looked at the time and said, ¡°Hank isn¡®t back at this time. He usually only returnste at night. ¡± In the past, the sisters were stupid and thought that Hank only returned homete because he was busy socializing after being promoted to be a manager. However, he was actually spending time with his lover! ¡°Have faith in Liberty. She will take care of it. ¡± Zachary could onlyfort Serenity this way. After a moment of silence, she said, ¡°I keep having this feeling that it won¡®t go smoothly. The Brown family is too shameless. You don¡®t know this, but they tried to make Sonny sick in order to keep my sister from going to work. ¡± She told Zachary what Olivia had done. Zachary¡®s expression was dark after hearing the full story. ¡°Is Sonny all right?¡± ¡°We don¡®t know if he¡®ll be infected yet. My sister said that Lucas had a viral flu which is contagious to other children. Sonny is usually healthy and has a strong immune system. I hope he doesn¡®t get caught up in their horrid n. ¡± ¡°Tell Liberty to call us if anything happens. She has to fight to the end during the divorce, especially when ites to Sonny¡®s custody. Who knows how they¡®ll abuse Sonny if we leave him to them. ¡± Hank had a new lover and was busy at work, so he would not have time to take care of the child. He would let his parents look after Sonny. His parents had been helping Chelsea to take care of her children, so they were biased toward Chelsea¡®s children. It would be strange if Sonny were to be cared for well by biased grandparents. Serenity nodded. All of them had said the same thing to Liberty. ¡°When they divorce¡­ Liberty¡®s life will definitely get better. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. ¡± In fact, what he wanted to say was, ¡®When they divorce, I¡®ll deal with Hank and make him lose everything. I¡®ll make the entire Brown family suffer the same treatment as the Hunt family. They¡®ll lose their jobs and businesses. ¡®Also, since Hank is so fond of Jessica, I¡®ll encourage them from behind the scenes. When Jessica marries into the Brown family, I¡®ll let her have a taste of how her predecessor suffered. ¡®They im their love to be true, but I¡®d like to see if Jessica stays with Hank when thetter has nothing left. ¡® Initially, Zachary did not think of messing with Hank. After all, Liberty still had to live with Hank. Then, when Serenity and he argued because of a misunderstanding, he did not bother even though he knew of Hank¡®s affair. Now. . . As soon as his sister¨Cinw divorced and broke away from the Brown family, he would not need to show any mercy. Although York Corporation and Waltham Electronics had no business dealings, they could be considered aspetitors. That was because there was a subsidiary under York Corporation that was sworn enemies with Waltham Electronics. Zachary could not punish Hank through the boss of Waltham Electronics. However, he could forcefully acquire Waltham Electronics and integrate it with York Corporation¡®s subsidiary. That way, Hank would be the meat on Zachary¡®s chopping board,pletely at his mercy. He would let Hank taste regret for the rest of his life! ¡°As long as my sister leaves the Brown family, her life will only get better. Maybe she¡®ll even find a second love and live a truly blissful life. Living better than Hank is the best revenge she can have against him. ¡± Serenity also hoped that her sister¡®s life would improve after the divorce. More than that, she hoped that Hank¡®s life would spiral downward after the divorce. Cheating men should suffer from retribution. As for the mistress, Jessica, she would soon understand that she could not always be young and beautiful. One day, she would be a faded old woman too! Chapter 381 Chapter 381 Chapter 381 Zachary looked at Serenity, who was also looking at him. He asked her, ¡°Do you want to go to your sister¡®s house to take a look?¡± Serenity looked at the time on her phone and said, ¡°Hank won¡®t be back at this time. ¡± She paused and added, ¡°My sister will take care of her own affairs. I¡®ll do my best to help her if she asks for help. ¡± Zachary then stayed silent. He was texting someone on his phone. A few minutester, he suddenly said to her, ¡°You¡®re not in a good mood. Why don¡®t you call it a day? I can apany you wherever you want to go. ¡± After a brief silence, Serenity said, ¡°I don¡®t have anywhere to go. ¡± Lately, Serenity¡®s mood would worsen drastically at the mention of her sister¡®s rriage. Serenity and Liberty only had each other for so many years. After Liberty got married, Serenity thought her sister had found a good home and that what awaited her would be a lifetime of happiness. However, the cruel reality was a p in the face. Liberty¡®s marriage was falling apart whereas Serenity and Zachary were still trying hard to advance their rtionship, so Serenity did not know how that would turn out. Serenity thought, ¡®Will our lives always be this tough?¡® ¡°If you¡®re willing to trust me, juste with me and leave the rest to me. ¡± Serenity met his dark and deep eyes that were often so cold that she could not fathom what he was thinking. However, at that moment, Serenity saw his concern for her in his eyes. She felt a warmth in her heart. Serenity nodded. ¡°Okay. I¡®ll pack up now. We can go out for a walk and feel the cool breeze. ¡± Suddenly, she saw Snowball lying under the cash register and asked softly, ¡°What about Mrs. Lane, Snowball, and the kittens? Should we send them home first?¡± Zachary reached out to her. ¡°What do you want?¡± ¡°Your car keys. ¡± Serenity took out her car keys and asked, ¡°Can Mrs. Lane drive?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± The workers in the York family were required to be able to drive because the Yorks lived far from the city center. If the workers did not know how to drive, it would not be convenient for them to get to work. Zachary took the car keys, turned his head, and called out in a deep voice, ¡°Mrs. Lane. ¡± Mrs. Lane, who was hiding in the corner trying not to be the third wheel, heard Zachary and hurried over. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± Zachary handed Serenity¡®s car keys to Mrs. Lane and said,¡± Serenity and I won¡®t be going home so soon. These are the car keys. You can bring Snowball and the kittens home first. ¡± He took out his bunch of keys and removed a house key. ¡°This is the key to the house. ¡± Mrs. Lane took the keys. ¡°Thanks. I¡®ll take Snowball and the kittens home first. ¡± She thought, ¡®Mr. York should have let me leave with the pets earlier so I wouldn¡®t haveughed until my stomach hurt. ¡® Mrs. Lane quickly left with the pets. Serenity stood beside Zachary and said, ¡°Let me take in the shelves at the door first. ¡± Zachary stood up silently, turned around, and went out to help her bring in the shelves that were outside before keeping them away. ¡°What did you stock up on again?¡± Zachary pointed to the result of Elisa¡®s shopping spree and asked Serenity, thinking that those were new stocks for the store. Serenity looked at it and replied, ¡°That¡®s Ms. Stone¡®s haul. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. She was in a bad mood earlier and bought all those things but didn¡®t have much use for them, so she gave them to me. There are two more big boxes of toys for Sonny. Earlier today, Hank¡®s mother brought Lucas here just to snatch those toys from Sonny. ¡± She only told Zachary about Lucas fighting with Sonny over the . toys and did not explicitly tell him that those toys were also from Elisa. Chapter 382 Chapter 382 Chapter 382 When Zachary heard that, he frowned and wanted to say something, but Serenity continued, ¡°Jasmine and I willpensate Elisa in other ways. We won¡®t take advantage of her. ¡± Serenity and Jasmine could not stop Elisa from putting those things at the bookstore. If they did not ept it, they could not imagine Elisa¡®s degree of anger, so they had to ept it first. When Jasmine and Serenity were tidying up earlier, they had a good idea of how much those things were worth. In the future, they would find an opportunity to return the favor to Elisa. ¡°It¡®s not a matter of taking advantage of her. Your store isn¡®t that spacious. You already have so many bookshelves and storage boxes, yet Ms. Stone keeps stuffing things into your store. It¡®s not like you can sell them. Isn¡®t that just taking up unnecessary space?¡± Actually, Zachary was just annoyed because he did not upy any space in his wife¡®s store, and Elisa beat him to it. Zachary thought Elisa was always monopolizing his wife, so his hatred for her was deeper than his love rival, Shawn Lowe. It was also because Elisa was a woman, so he could not say,¡± Serenity, I don¡®t like that you¡®re spending so much time with Elisa. I¡®ll get jealous, so you should cut ties with her. ¡± If he dared say such a thing, Serenity would look at him strangely, and he would be embarrassed. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. ¡°Our house is spacious. Why don¡®t I move these things home then?¡± Zachary was speechless. He was already upset that Elisa¡®s things were taking up space in Serenity¡®s store, yet Serenity wanted to move these things home?! ¡°Let¡®s go. ¡± Zachary lowered his head, not wanting to argue with Serenity over something like this. Serenity was a carefree person, and Zachary would often get more frustrated when they had a conflict. This was something he had experienced before. When Serenity was angry, she went on a shopping spree and spent tens of thousands of dors using his card. Besides, she went about her day as usual and was still happy. On the contrary, Zachary got so mad that he went back to his vi. If Grandma May had not found a way for them to get back together, Serenity would still be ignoring Zachary. . ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity went along with him and no longer continued the topic. They got into Zachary¡®s car together after closing up the shop. As soon as Serenity got in the car, she saw a child safety seat in the back seat. Zachary exined, ¡°I send you to work sometimes, and Sonny is too young to sit on his own, so I bought a child safety seat. ¡± Serenity listened to his exnation and looked at him quietly. After a long while, she said in a serious tone, ¡°Mr. York, what will you do if I fall in love with you one day?¡± L The caring and thoughtsul side of this man moved her heart. Zachary looked at her for a moment before he leaned over, wrapped his arm around her waist, and pulled her to his side. His handsome face approached her, and his thin lips pressed against her red lips. He then moved his lips from hers and whispered in her ear, ¡°I don¡®t know what will happen because you haven¡®t fallen in love with me yet. ¡± Serenity was speechless. She raised her hand, pushed his muscr body away, and put on her seatbelt as if nothing had happened. ¡°So where are you taking me to so I can forget my worries?¡± Zachary straightened his back. ¡°Since you¡®re in my car, just follow my lead. ¡± ¡°Hmm¡­ why don¡®t we go to the beach to get some fresh air?¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Sure. ¡± He started the car and asked her, ¡°Did you pay for the bed and wardrobe?¡± He did not receive any bank transaction notification, so he figured she spent her own money. ¡°Yeah. I forgot to bring the card you gave me for household expenses when I went out shopping, so I paid for them. We¡®re married, so there¡®s no need to be so calctive, right?¡± Zachary pursed his lips. She was clearly the one who was being calctive. Chapter 383 Chapter 383 Chapter 383 Serenity said she wanted to go to the beach for some fresh air, so her wish was Zachary¡®s command. Of course, he could not bring her to the Seaview Vi. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Fortunately, during this season, the beach was not as busy as it was in the summer at this hour. There were only a few tourists scattered around the beach. The couple walked on the soft sand while the waves crashed onto the shore. The sea breeze messed up Serenity¡®s hair and she was feeling chilly. Zachary suddenly stopped in his tracks, so Serenity followed suit and asked him, ¡°What¡®s wrong?¡± He took off his suit jacket and handed it to Serenity. ¡°It¡®s quite windy today. You should wear my jacket. ¡± Seeing that Serenity did not take the jacket from him, Zachary continued, ¡°Are you gonna put it on yourself, or do you want me to help you?¡± Serenity had no choice but to take his jacket and put it on. She asked, ¡°Aren¡®t you cold?¡± ¡°I am, but I¡®m more afraid that you¡®ll catch a cold. ¡± Serenity looked at him andughed, ¡°Mr. York, your answer is different from the ones on TV shows. The male lead will usually say, ¡®No, I¡®m not cold. You can wear it. ¡± Of course, his answer was honest. ¡°If I¡®d known that the sea breeze was so strong and chilly, I wouldn¡®t have requested toe here. ¡± Serenity put on his jacket and instantly felt warm. She tilted her head to look at him, and he happened to be looking at her. Their eyes met, and he said, ¡°Although I feel cold, I won¡®t shrink up like you. I¡®m wearing a long¨Csleeve shirt, anyway. It¡®s definitely warmer than your short¨Csleeve blouse. ¡± ¡°Well, now that you mention it, I feel less guilty. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips and said, ¡°If you¡®re worried that I¡®ll catch a cold, you can hug me. That way, I can feel your warmth and won¡®t feel cold anymore. ¡± Serenity almost choked on her saliva. Was he flirting with her? Seeing that Serenity was silent, Zachary knew she would not hug him, so he continued walking forward. Within minutes, Serenity caught up to him and returned his suit jacket to him. Before he could speak, she quickly said, ¡°You¡®re taller than me, so even if I hug you, I won¡®t be able to block the wind for you. Why don¡®t you put on your jacket and hug me instead?¡±. Zachary¡®s face was cold when Serenity handed his jacket back to him, but after hearing what she said, he quickly took his jacket and put it on. He could not wait to pull her into his arMs. ¡°Let¡®s find a ce to sit,¡± he suggested. Serenity had no objections. Zachary and Serenity were hugging each other while walking slowly. It was considered a breakthrough in their rtionship as husband and wife. They finally found a quiet ce and sat on the sand. As they sat, Serenity leaned against Zachary¡®s chest while he hugged her. She felt warm and cozy. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± ¡°Hmm?¡± ¡°You usually put on a cold and serious face, but your embrace is warmer than I imagined. ¡± Zachary looked down at her. ¡°Oh? You¡®ve imagined me hugging you?¡± Serenity was speechless. Zachary pursed his lips and smiled. He hugged her a little tighter. ¡°I was going to bring you to the beach for a nice seafood dinner this weekend, but since Liberty is going to talk to Hank about the divorce, I¡®m guessing you won¡®t be in the mood for a holiday with me here. I¡®ll treat you to a seafood supperter tonight. ¡± ¡°Now that you¡®ve mentioned it, I¡®m hungry. Let¡®s go eat now. ¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°Okay. I¡®ll stay with you tonight no matter what. ¡±. Serenity stood up and said with a smile, ¡°Don¡®t make empty promises! Will you strip dance if I ask you to?¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. Chapter 384 Chapter 384 Chapter 384 Serenityughed. She suddenly wanted to see Zachary strip dance. Zachary stood up and flicked her forehead and she winced from the pain. ¡°I don¡®t even know what¡®s in your head. You¡®re always so unpredictable. ¡± Serenity put it out there again, ¡°Nana always tells me to jump you, strip you, and sleep with you so she can have a great granddaughter. I¡®m still thinking if I should fulfill Nana¡®s wish. ¡± Zachary flicked her forehead again when he heard this. ¡°Ouch!¡± It was painful, so Serenity took revenge by pinching his cheeks. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary grabbed both of her hands and looked serious. Serenity¡®s yfulness vanished abruptly when she met his deep eyes. She said cautiously, ¡°Mr. York, just say what you want to say. Your serious look is scaring me. ¡± ¡°Listen. ¡± ¡°Mhmm, I¡®m all ears. ¡± ¡°Whether we sleep together or not, it¡®s our privacy, so we should follow our hearts. Don¡®t sleep with me just because someone tells you to. ¡± Zachary did not want their first time to be because of his grandmother¡®s interference. Just like when they got their marriage license, Zachary told his grandmother that how he treated Serenity was his business, and that his grandmother should no longer interfere in their affairs. ¡°Oh, you¡®re worried about this?¡°. Serenity felt relieved instantly. She pulled her hand back from his big palm, turned around, and walked back. She said as she walked, ¡°I¡®m just kidding. I won¡®t do that just because of what Nana said. ¡± She also felt that romantic rtionships shoulde naturally. Zachary looked at her back in silence. He felt like he was right, but at the same time, he was missing something Zachary missed the chance for her to jump him, strip him naked, and sleep with him. However¡­ It was still too early for them to sleep together because they were not in love yet. It was just like how Zachary answered Serenity¡®s question earlier in the car when he said, ¡°¡­because you haven¡®t fallen in love with me yet. ¡± Zachary could finally see their situation clearly. He hurriedly strode forward and matched her pace. He treated his wife to a seafood feast at a beachfront restaurant for supper. Serenity asked for two bottles of beer. ¡°I like to order two bottles of beer when I have supper with Jasmine. It¡®s nice to drink beer and eat at the same time. ¡± Zachary was deshelling the shrimps for her and replied, ¡°Beer¡®s the only thing you can drink with your level of alcohol tolerance. ¡± Serenity blushed. ¡°I know I have a low alcohol tolerance, but I can take two bottles of beer. I¡®ll just sleep soundly at most. ¡°Would you like a drink?¡± ¡°If I drink, should we stay here for the night?¡± Serenity stuck out her tongue yfully and thought, ¡®Right, he has to drive tonight, so he can¡®t drink. ¡® Thus, Zachary peeled the shrimp and debone the fish for Serenity while she ate, drank, and talked about her sister. Zachary knew that Serenity was still worried about her sister¡®s future even if he was spending time with her. Serenity ate most of the food on the table. As a foodie, she had a big appetite, and Zachary finally witnessed it.All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary thought, ¡®At least she has such a hobby. That way, I can use this to win her over. I don¡®t know what to do if she¡®s always as invincible as she was when she beat up Noah Hunt and the thugs. ¡® It was already dark by the time they were done eating and drinking. The couple headed back home. As soon as they got in the car, Serenity leaned against the passenger seat and said to Zachary,¡± I¡®m going to take a nap. Wake me up when we get home. ¡± Chapter 385 Chapter 385 Chapter 385 Zachary took off his suit jacket and handed it to Serenity. ¡°Wear it and take a nap. ¡± Since they were no longer at the beach, Serenity epted and covered her body with the suit jacket before she took a nap. Zachary turned off the music in the car to not disturb her. He drove the car in silence while Serenity took a nap. After a while, they arrived at Brynfield. The bodyguards were wandering in the lobby because their boss was out of their sight all night. After the bodyguards saw Mrs. Lane came back with the missus¡® pets, they found out that their boss was taking his wife out on a drive. The bodyguards were anxious, but no one dared contact the boss for fear of disturbing the couple¡®s privacy. At that moment when the bodyguards saw Zachary¡®s car, they quickly dispersed as they were afraid that the missus would see them. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Jim ran the fastest and almost dove right into the bushes. That was because the missus could recognize him. Zachary pretended not to notice the bodyguards¡® reaction. Serenity was in ignorant. Otherwise, she would have discovered that something was wrong since the bodyguards always hung around the lobby every day. Zachary parked the car, unfastened his seat belt, and called out,¡± Serenity, we¡®re home. ¡± Serenity slept soundly and did not hear him. It was probably because she had two beers. Zachary nudged her twice, but Serenity fell to the side and did not show any signs of waking up. ¡°You fall into such a deep sleep after drinking only two bottles of beer. You¡®d better drink less in the future. ¡± Zachary got out of the car, went to the passenger seat, and opened the car door. He leaned in and unfastened Serenity¡®s seat belt before pulling her into his arms to carry her out of the car. The bodyguards, who dispersed but did not go far, saw this scene and rubbed their eyes in disbelief. After confirming that what they saw was real, the bodyguards turned around and hurried back to their apartments in the same building to sleep. It seemed like the boss and his wife were doing great. Zachary carried Serenity upstairs and rang the doorbell to their house. Soon after, Mrs. Lane came and opened the door. ¡°Mr. Z¨CYork, what happened to Ms. Hunt?¡± . Mrs. Lane almost called him Mr. Zachary again. ¡°She had two bottles of beer and fell dead asleep. ¡± Zachary carried Serenity into the room. Mrs. Lane finally understood what happened. She closed the door and locked it. ¡°Mr. York, do you need my help?¡± Mrs. Lane asked as she walked over. ¡°Just open the room door for me. ¡± Zachary motioned to Mrs. Lane to help him open the door to Serenity¡®s room. Mrs. Lane did as she was told. ¡°Mrs. Lane, you can go back to bed. She won¡®t make a fuss because she¡®ll sleep soundly with alcohol in her system. ¡± Mrs. Lane responded and turned to go back to her room. Even if the missus made a fuss, the boss would handle it. Zachary walked to the bed with Serenity in his arMs. He put her down gently and helped her take off her shoes. He even pulled the quilt over her before he stood up to leave. Looking at her, Zachary suddenly thought of something when he was about to walk away. He turned around, bent over, and kissed Serenity¡®s lips. After stealing a kiss, Zachary turned around and walked out contentedly. When he reached the door, he stopped again. Since Serenity was in such a deep slumber, he could take the opportunity to get her copy of the agreement back Chapter 386 Chapter 386 Chapter 386 Zachary acted on his idea. He sneaked around Serenity¡®s room and rummaged through her things like a thief. After searching all the ces where Serenity might hide the agreement, Zachary still could not find her copy of the agreement. Where did she put it? Zachary stood in front of the dresser as he stared at it while trying to recall any corners which he might have left out. He had rummaged through all the drawers. Finally, his gazended on a piece of paper on the table with a golden hairpin drawn on it. He picked up the paper. . Serenity¡®s drawing was excellent. Why did she draw¡± is golden hairpin? Zachary could not guess Serenity¡®s intention of drawing a golden hairpin. He flipped it over and saw that it was the agreement he was looking for. Serenity doodled on the reverse side of her agreement. No wonder he could not find the agreement after he ransacked her room. Zachary folded Serenity¡®s copy of the agreement and stuffed it into his pants pocket. He then walked to the bed and sat at the edge of it.Material ? N?velDrama.Org. He stared at Serenity¡®s sleeping face for a while and stretched out his hand to pinch her cheek lightly. He smiled slyly and said, ¡°Serenity, you¡®re stuck being my wife for the rest of your life!¡± If Grandma May was present, she would have pped him in the face. Zachary, who said he would never chase after his wife, was now sneaking around Serenity¡®s room. After Zachary stole Serenity¡®s agreement, he returned to his room happily. He then took out his copy of the agreement, took a lighter, hid in the bathroom, and burned the two copies to ashes, which he flushed down the toilet. Unless Serenity could turn back time, she would never find that agreement again. It was midnight when Liberty woke up. She had not showered yet. She wanted to coax her son to sleep before she showered, but she did not expect she would doze off. Liberty got up and went out to check the front door if it was locked. Seeing that it was not double¨Clocked from the inside, Liberty knew that Hank was still out. ¡°He¡®s not back at this hour, which means he¡®s either pretending to be dead or avoiding me,¡± Liberty muttered. She did not believe that Hank was unaware of what his mother did. It might even be Hank¡®s n. Hank looked upset when he found out that Liberty was working at Lewis & Co. It was probably because he thought she could not find a job since she had left the workce for more than three years and was she was obese. However, she managed to join Lewis & Co. , which was equivalent to a p in his face. Hank was probably thest person who would want Liberty to go to work. Hank¡®s mother did not return to Bright Boulevard after she made a fuss that afternoon. Instead, she brought Lucas home. She was probably afraid that Liberty would settle the score with her after work. Liberty called her mother¨Cinw, but her mother¨Cinw did not dare answer. Thus, she sent a reproachful message to her mother inw. However, her mother¨Cinw did not reply and pretended to be dead. Hank was the same. Liberty went back to the room and took a shower. Aftering out of the bathroom, she picked up her phone and called Hank. This time, someone answered the phone. Liberty yelled, ¡°Hank Brown! What time is it now that you¡®re still not back yet?!¡± After a moment of silence, the person on the other end of the phone said, ¡°Hank is taking a bath. Why are you calling him? You can leave a message, and I¡®ll ry it to himter. ¡± It was Jessica Yates. Hank went for business entertainment, and Jessica was his secretary, so she apanied him. Since they drank some alcohol and perhaps Hank had been nning it for a long time, Hank hugged Jessica and did not let her go. Jessica yed hard to get, but in the end, they fell on the bed together. Jessica changed her mind after she slept with Hank. She wanted to publicly challenge Liberty and steal Hank away from Liberty. Jessica wanted Hank to divorce Liberty so she could marry Hank and be a manager¡®s wife. Chapter 387 Chapter 387 Chapter 387 Liberty¡®s mind went nk for a moment. She did not expect Jessica to answer Hank¡®s phone. Liberty then took the phone away from her ear and recorded the call. Zachary¡®s friend helped Liberty to investigate and collect evidence of Hank¡®s adultery. However, the evidence he had could only prove that Hank was emotionally cheating on her because Hank did not sleep with Jessica. At that moment, the cheating pair was probably together, so Liberty thought of recording the call first. ¡°Who are you?¡± Jessica was smug when Liberty kept silent. Liberty¡®s reaction was just as Jessica had imagined it to be. After Liberty found out that Hank was cheating, she made a huge fuss. Hank was so annoyed that he wanted to divorce her regardless of his son¡®s custody. If Liberty did not cry or make trouble, Hank and his family would think that Liberty was looking forward to a divorce and would make her stay instead. ¡°I¡®m Hank¡®s secretary, Jessica Yates. Who are you?¡± Jessica asked knowingly. ¡°Who am I? I¡®m his wife! Where is Hank? Where are you, and what are you doing?! Get Hank to answer the phone!¡± Liberty¡®s volume increased as she spoke, which made her seem angry. Jessica felt a sense of victory over Liberty¡®s anger. Jessica did not hang up and said, ¡°I told you, Hank is taking a shower, so he won¡®te out so soon. Didn¡®t Hank tell you that he has business entertainment tonight? I¡®m his secretary, so I have to apany him. ¡°We drank alcohol, so we can¡®t drive. Hank got us a hotel room and thought we could sober up before going home. I didn¡®t expect you to call in the middle of the night to check on him. ¡± Jessica uttered thetter part of that sentence in a weird tone. ¡°There are so many chauffeurs, so why didn¡®t you call him one to send him back? Why did you two insist on staying in a hotel? Are you two doing something behind my back?! Are you?! ¡°My husband didn¡®te home after midnight, so why can¡®t I call to check on him? That¡®s my prerogative as his wife! What does it have to do with an outsider like you?!¡± Liberty shouted on the phone hysterically. On the other end of the phone, Jessica was calm and had a smile on her face. ¡°Jessica Yates, are you staying with my husband? What have you both done?!¡± Liberty roared over the phone. ¡°Hank is drunk, so I need to take care of him, and staying in the same room will be more convenient. We didn¡®t do anything, Mrs. Brown. Don¡®t think too much. I¡®m just taking care of Hank on your behalf, so you should be thanking me instead of yelling at me. ¡± Liberty felt disgusted when she heard Jessica addressing her as Mrs. Brown. Sure enough, mistresses were really thick¨Cskinned. She told herself to just bear with it and listen to the nonsense Jessica was saying. ¡°I don¡®t need you to take care of my husband. Tell me the address of the hotel right now, and I¡®ll pick him up. ¡± Jessica replied gently, ¡°Mrs. Brown, you still have to take care of your son. It¡®s already midnight. If youe here to pick Hank up, who will help you babysit? Don¡®t worry, I¡®m right here, so I¡®ll make sure Hank gets proper care. It¡®s veryte, so you should go to bed. ¡± Jessica hung up the phone right after. Jessica guessed that Liberty would go berserk at home. After the call was disconnected, Liberty checked the recording to make sure that the call was recorded. Liberty cursed Hank after she saved the recording. Beep Liberty received a new message on WhatsApp. She opened it and saw that it was from Hank. No, it should be sent by Jessica since she was using Hank¡®s phone. It was the location of the hotel that came with a message typed by Jessica. (This is the address. Are you free toe over?] Liberty was furious when she saw it. Jessica could not hold it in anymore and wanted to openly challenge her.Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 388 Chapter 388 Chapter 388 Liberty knew that she had to take care of her son and could not leave her son home alone at this hour just so she could catch the cheating pair in the act. Liberty was contemting if she should call her sister. Should she disturb her sister at this time? After hesitating for a while, Liberty felt that it would be beneficial to her to seize this opportunity to capture more evidence of Hank¡¯s adultery. Thus, she called Serenity. Serenity slept so soundly after drinking two bottles of beer that she did not know Zachary carried her upstairs. Liberty called Serenity repeatedly, which forced Serenity to wake up. Serenity took her phone and answered the call without looking at the caller ID. ¡°Hello, who is it¡­?¡± ¡°Seren, it¡¯s me, Liberty. ¡± ¡°Liberty, what¡¯s wrong?¡± Serenity, who was gradually regaining her senses, remembered that Liberty was going to bring up divorce to the scumbag Hank and thought they got into a fight again. Serenity¡¯s sleepiness instantly disappeared. She suddenly sat up on the bed and asked anxiously, Liberty, what¡¯s the matter? Did Hank abuse you again?¡± (L ¡°He didn¡¯te home and said he would be back veryte because he has business entertainment. It was almost one o¡¯clock in the morning, and he was still not back yet, so I called him. But Jessica Yates answered the call, and the two of them were sleeping together. ¡± ¡°Do you want to go and catch them in the act?¡± Serenity immediately read her sister¡®s mind. ¡°I need evidence of them cheating. That way, I¡®ll have the upper hand. ¡± ¡°Do you know where they are?¡± ¡°Jessica is so arrogant that she sent me the location of the hotel. Seren, I¡®ll go by myself. Can youe to my house and help me babysit Sonny? I¡®m afraid he¡®ll cry if he wakes up and doesn¡®t see me. ¡± ¡°Liberty, I¡®ll go with you. ¡± ¡°No need. ¡± ¡°There are two of them! If you go alone and if there¡®s a fight, you¡®ll be at a disadvantage. You can send me the location of the hotel, and I¡®ll apany you. I can fight better than you, so I can beat them up!¡± Liberty said, ¡°Seren, trust me. I can do it myself. I¡®ll head out first, so remember toe over to watch Sonny. ¡± She hung up the phone afterward. ¡°Liberty!¡± Serenity called out to Liberty, but that did not stop Liberty from hanging up. She slid out of bed quickly, put on her shoes, and hurried out of the room. Serenity moved fast, so she made some noise, which rmed Zachary who was in his room. Zachary came out of his room and saw Serenity running out the door. ¡°Serenity!¡± Zachary instinctively shouted to stop her. Serenity stopped, took a few steps back, and returned to the house. ¡°Mr. York? You¡®re not asleep yet? I have an urgent matter and need to go now. ¡± Serenity wanted to leave right after she said that. Zachary strode over quickly. ¡°Serenity. ¡± He ran out of the house and pulled Serenity back just as she was about to rush into the elevator. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. His face was gloomy, and he asked her coldly, ¡°Where are you going in the middle of the night? Can¡®t you wait until dawn to settle any urgent matters? You had a few drinks, so if you drive now, you¡®ll be driving under the influence. You¡®re not allowed to go alone!¡± After a pause, he added, ¡°If you must go, I¡®ll go with you!¡± ¡°Hank is with his mistress, and my sister wants to catch them in the act, so she asked me to take care of Sonny while she¡®s out. I¡®m worried about my sister, so I have to go and check it out. Mr. York, since you¡®re awake, please help me wake Mrs. Lane and send her over to take care of Sonny. ¡± Chapter 389 Chapter 389 Chapter 389 Serenity removed a key from her bunch of keys and handed it to Zachary while she said, ¡°This is the key to my sister¡®s house. ¡± Zachary¡®s dark eyes flickered. . He knew Hank was at a business entertainment. Since Zachary asked Josh to investigate Hank and collect evidence of Hank¡®s infidelity, the nosy Josh went above and beyond his task and sent someone to follow Hank discreetly. Therefore, Josh knew what Hank was doing as soon as Hank left his office. When Zachary was with Serenity in the evening, he took the time to send a message to Josh, telling Josh to look for an opportunity to fuel the mes so Hank and Jessica could make substantial progress. That way, they would have evidence of Hank betraying his marriage. This way, Liberty would get the upper hand from a moral point of view when she filed for divorce. Now that Hank and Jessica finally slept together, was it a natural course of events or was it the result of Zachary¡®s intervention? Zachary could not determine which one it was, but the result was the same. ¡°Do you know which hotel they are in?¡± ¡°My sister won¡®t tell me because she doesn¡®t want me to go. ¡± Serenity was a little helpless. When Liberty needed help, she pushed Serenity away at a critical moment and wanted to face this alone. ¡°I¡®ll call my friend to check it out for you. He¡®s best at looking into things. ¡± ¡°It¡®s sote¡­¡± ¡°No worries, I¡®ll treat him to dinner another day. ¡± Zahary would just give Josh another day off. ¡°Serenity, don¡®t leave. Wait for me here, and give me your car keys. I¡®ll wake Mrs. Lane and ask her to babysit Sonny at Liberty¡®s house while I go with you to look for Liberty,¡± Zachary said to Serenity. When Serenity gave him the car keys, he took them and went back into the house. He then called Josh while he knocked on Mrs. Lane¡®s room door. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. Fortunately, Josh was a night owl who slept and woke upte. He would only arrive early at the office if there was some gossip to catch. Otherwise, he would arriveter than Zachary. Josh was still wide awake when he received the call from Zachary. ¡°Where is Hank now?¡± Zachary asked in a low voice. ¡°He¡®s at the Grand Hotel under the Stone Group. What¡®s wrong? Is your sister¨Cinw looking for him?¡± ¡°Got it. ¡± Zachary hung up the phone. Josh was speechless. Zachary did not even give him a chance to gossip a little. After waking Mrs. Lane, Zachary briefly exined what happened ¨C and hurried back to his room. He found a ck marker and painted the entire left side of his face to make it seem like a birthmark. He hurried out the door after he painted his face. Mrs. Lane had already left. Sonny was still young. Mrs. Lane was worried about Sonny and hurried over when she found out that Liberty had to leave the house. Serenity was waiting for Zachary at the front door. She was impatient and wanted to leave without Zachary several times, but she did not know where Liberty was at the moment. When she saw Zacharying out the door, she urged, ¡°Come on, my sister might be¡­ Why did you draw all over your face?¡± Chapter 390 Chapter 390 Chapter 390 Zachary locked the front door and pulled Serenity out. As he walked, he exined, ¡°My friend found out that your brother¨Cinw is now at Grand Hotel, which is owned by the Stone Group. I work at York Corporation, and the twopanies aren¡®t on good terms with each other. I don¡®t want people from the Stone Group to recognize me, so I painted half of my face ck. No one will be able to recognize me now. ¡± Serenity nced at the birthmark that he drew. Even when they were in a rush, Zachary could think of this detail, which showed how meticulous he was. No wonder Zachary could be a white¨Ccor executive at York Corporation. Serenity finally believed Grandma May¡®s praises for Zachary that he was a very attentive man. Of course, Zachary would only be attentive if he cared about someone. ¡°Wash it off with soap water when wee backter. ¡± Serenity ran a bookstore that sold stationeries, so she knew how to clean marker stains on the skin. Zachary wanted to say that she could help him clean the marker stain on his face, but he could not bring himself to say it. He was a little embarrassed. Il Grandma May was there, she would have said, ¡°What¡®s the use of your mouth if you don¡®t dare say anything?!¡± Josh would say, ¡°Boss, just say it boldly!¡± Serenity, Zachary, and Mrs. Lane were busy going about their way. Meanwhile, Jessica hung up Liberty¡®s call and knocked on the bathroom door. Jessica went in after Hank opened the door for her. After a while, the two came out of the bathroom together. Hank carried Jessica, who had a blush on her face. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Anyone with a brain would know what they were doing in the bathroom. Once theyy back down on the big bed, Jessica nestled in Hank¡®s arms, and suddenly said, ¡°Hank, I forgot to tell you that your wife called just now asking you to go home. Since I answered the call, do you think she¡®ll misunderstand our rtionship?¡± Hearing this, Hank pushed Jessica away. He sat upright, widened his eyes, and said anxiously, ¡°Why didn¡®t you say so earlier?¡± Jessica was upset when she saw his reaction and said aggrievedly,¡± I knocked on the door and went in to tell you about this, but you distracted me¡­ That¡®s why I forgot. Are you afraid that she¡®ll find out?¡± Hank¡®s expression eased. Hank hated Liberty. They did not stay in the same room after the domestic violence incident. Liberty would not let him sleep with her when he had the urge either. He had desired Jessica for a long time and finally got a taste, so he got a little greedy. ¡°Darling. ¡± Hank hurriedly hugged Jessica¡®s shoulders and said apologetically, ¡°I¡®m sorry I reacted poorly just now. I¡®m not afraid of Liberty finding out. In fact, I¡®m getting ready to divorce her anytime, but ¨C Sonny is still young. I told you before that my parents will help me with pick¨Cups and drop¨Coffs when Sonny goes to kindergarten. Then, I¡®ll divorce Liberty. ¡°If she finds out now, it¡®ll deviate from my original n. That¡®s why I was anxious. ¡± Hank was telling the truth. He did not divorce Liberty right away because he wanted to wait until his son was a little older to be sent to kindergarten. After that, he could abandon Liberty. ¡°Then you should go back right now and exin to her so she doesn¡®t get the wrong idea about us. ¡± Jessica went back to being gentle and considerate as she urged Hank to go home. Hank did not care anymore. He said, ¡°So what if she misunderstands us? I don¡®t need to answer to her. ¡± ¡°What if she finds us?¡± ¡°So what? I¡®m repulsed by her ugly face. I¡®m a healthy and normal man. Does she want me to be abstinent? Jessica, I love you. You¡®re my true love. ¡± Hank hugged Jessica andforted her. ¡°Even if she doese over, I¡®ll protect you. Besides, she¡®ll nevere here. It¡®s sote, and no one else is home to watch Sonny. She won¡®t leave Sonny home alone. ¡± Chapter 391 Chapter 391 Chapter 391 Jessica leaned against Hank¡®s chest and said softly, ¡°Hank, I¡®m sorry. I shouldn¡®t have answered that call. I was afraid she was looking for you for something urgent. ¡± ¡°It¡®s okay. I can¡®t keep this hidden from her forever and have to tell her about our affair sooner orter, anyway. Since she already has some doubts, I¡®ll bring up the divorce when I get home. ¡± Hank did not want Jessica to suffer any grievances. His heart had long been biased toward Jessica, and he no longer had any affection for Liberty. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. However, Hank put up with Liberty because he was taking into consideration his parents and son. Otherwise, he would have kicked Liberty out long ago. ¡°Hank, will she get a cut of your assets if you two get divorced?¡± Jessica did not want Liberty to get a cut of Hank¡®s property. She wanted to see Liberty leave empty¨Chanded. Liberty was away from the workforce for a few years, and her child was only two years old. She wanted to return to the workce, but that would be quite difficult. When the timees, Jessica would be able to see Liberty¡®s dejected state. Liberty might even beg on the streets while carrying Sonny on her back. Hank sneered. ¡°Do you think I¡®ll give her a cut if she wants it? She hasn¡®t earned a penny for the family since she married me. I paid for the down payment of our house before our marriage and have been paying the loan after marriage. I will never give her the house. ¡°She only paid for the renovation. Anyway, I won¡®t pay her back for the renovation, so is she wants, she can remove the tiles and take them away. ¡°As for my savings¡­¡± Hank only became a manager in thest two years. Since then, his ie has doubled. However, he spent a lot and would often buy expensive gifts for Jessica. Thus, he did not save much of his sry and only had around two million dors. On the contrary, he made a lot of side ie. In order to not leave any paper trails that could be caught by hispany, he asked for cash payment and used his father¡®s ID card to apply for a bank ount. He put the cash into that ount, but only he knew the PIN to it even though his father had the bank card. Hank did not tell Liberty about this money. He only did this after he fell in love with Jessica. Even if Liberty guessed how much his real ie was, she would not be able to get a share of his side ie because there was no evidence. ¡°Is your savings enough to pay off the mortgage? Why don¡®t you use your savings to pay off the mortgage in one go? You paid for the down payment of the house before marriage and were solely responsible for the mortgage after marriage. Liberty only forked out the renovation costs, so it¡®s very difficult for her to get a cut of your house. ¡± Jessica gave him some advice to help him keep his property so she could enjoy it after marrying Hank. She added, ¡°Liberty can only get a cut of your savings because that¡®s your shared property after marriage. As long as you pay off your mortgage, you won¡®t have any savings left. That way, Liberty ¨C won¡®t be able to get anything even if she wants to divide the property. ¡± Hank replied, ¡°I repaid the loan with my sry, not my personal savings before marriage. My sry after marriage is considered joint property. If I use it to repay the mortgage, Liberty can¡®t get a cut of my house, but she can ask forpensation. ¡± Jessica was silent for a moment before she suggested, ¡°Why don¡®t you transfer your savings to your parents? If you repay the loan with your parent¡®s name, it¡®ll have nothing to do with Liberty. ¡± ¡°Jessica, Liberty has found out about the two of us now. If I transfer the money to my parents now, it¡®ll be a transfer of property. If Liberty is ruthless and sues me, she can recover the money in the divorcewsuit. ¡°I don¡¯t have a lot of savings, less than two hundred thousand dors. Unless I can make Liberty give up voluntarily, it¡®ll be hard for her to leave empty¨Chanded. ¡± When Hank was arguing with Liberty, he mored that Liberty would get nothing. In fact, he knew very well that once Liberty filed a divorcewsuit to divide the property, he would have to fork out some money for her. ¡°Why do you have so little savings?¡± Jessica was his assistant, so she knew more about his ie than Liberty did. She shamelessly wanted to marry him just because she knew his ie was high. As long as Hank divorced Liberty and married her, she would be able to show off to her family, and then her brothers and sisters¨Cinw would try to please her. She could also show off to her rtives and friends that she married a capable man. Chapter 392 Chapter 392 Chapter 392 Hank whispered in Jessica¡®s ear, which made her smile. Fortunately, he was smart. Jessica was relieved that she could enjoy avish lifestyle after marrying him. Of course, she also had to put her guard up. After marriage, she would hold his sry card. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. He also promised to add her name to the title deed, so she would make sure that he did as he promised. Anyway, she would not follow in Liberty¡®s footsteps. ¡°It¡®s actually very easy to make Liberty leave without a penny,¡± Hank said. ¡°How?¡± Although Hank only had that bit of money, it was still better not to give Liberty any ig. As long as Hank did not share his property with Liberty, Jessica would be able to reap the benefits. ¡°Just make her choose between Sonny and dividing the property. She will definitely choose Sonny and leave empty¨Chanded. ¡± Jessica was disappointed after hearing this and said, ¡°Are you willing to give up your son¡®s custody? He¡®s the only paternal grandson your parents have. Even if you¡®re willing to give it up, your parents won¡®t agree to it. ¡± Hank said, ¡°Sonny is my son, so of course, I can¡®t give up on his custody. ¡± Jessica sneered at him. ¡°Then why did you even mention it?¡± Hank kissed her and said, ¡°If we slept together sooner and you were to be pregnant with a boy, my parents and I would be willing to give Sonny¡®s custody to Liberty. ¡± He just slept with Jessica, and she went to get morning¨Cafter pills afterward. Thus, it was clear that she would not have a child soon. At present, Sonny was his only son. Hank also had some old fashioned ideology and preserred sons to daughters. In any case, Hank would not give Sonny to Liberty. Sonny was smart and cute. Who knew what kind of child he and Jessica would have in the future? Hank was not willing to take that risk. What if Jessica gave birth to a daughter? Therefore, Hank wanted custody of Sonny. ¡°You don¡®t like it if I give birth to a daughter?¡± ¡°How could I? I¡®ll love him or her as long as they¡®re ours. But my parents want a grandson. Don¡®t worry, Jessica. You don¡®t have to take care of Sonny in the future. I¡®ll send Sonny to my parents and let them take care of Sonny so he won¡®t affect our married life. ¡± Hank had thought about everything. ¡°Liberty will definitely fight for Sonny¡®s custody, but she has no ie, so she won¡®t be able to compete with you. ¡± Hank agreed with Jessica and suddenly thought that Liberty starting her new job was not beneficial to him. He had to find a way to make Liberty lose her job. If that happened, Liberty would not have a job or an ie. If she got custody of Sonny, how would she support him? That way, she would lose the custody battle. Lewis & Co¡­ Hank wondered if he knew anyone who worked in Lewis & Co. who could do him a favor and make Liberty lose her job. Bang bang Someone mmed on the door. Jessica¡®s eyes flickered as she thought, ¡®Is Liberty here? That fat woman really left her son to look for her husband? It looks like she still has deep feelings for Hank!¡® Chapter 393 Chapter 393 Chapter 393 ¡°It¡®s sote. Who¡®s banging on the door?¡± Hank muttered as he went to open the door with an irritated expression. When he opened the door and saw the chubby woman standing there, he was dumbfounded and looked shocked. Liberty was here! How did she know where he was? The couple looked at each other. Liberty saw his naked torso and thought about their rtionship in the past ten years. It turned out that men could betray a woman so easily and quickly. After Hank came to his senses, he immediately looked grim and questioned Liberty. ¡°Why are you here? Where is Sonny? It¡®s the middle of the night, so why did you leave Sonny alone?¡± ¡°Hank, who banged on the door?¡± Before Hank finished berating Liberty, Jessica sashayed over. Jessica was wearing lingerie, and her hair was messy. Liberty wondered if the two just had sex because Jessica looked charming and sexy. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. There were even traces of their infidelity on Jessica¡®s neck. Even a fool would know what was going on in this situation. ¡°You b*tch!¡± Liberty used herrge body to push Hank aside and opened the door. She rushed in at lightning speed and stopped in front of Jessica in the blink of an eye. She then grabbed Jessica¡®s long and messy hair. Liberty raised her hand and pped Jessica four times in one go without the slightest hesitation. ¡°Ah¨C¡± Jessica screamed. ¡°You said you were taking care of my husband! B*tch! Is this how you take care of my husband? He has a wife, so he doesn¡®t need your care! l¡®ll beat you to death!¡± Liberty yelled while she hit Jessica. Jessica tried to retaliate, but Liberty took the lead, so Jessica¡¯s resistance was futile. Liberty was so strong that she pushed Jessica to the ground, sat on her body, and began pping her from one side after another repeatedly. The ps sounded like firecrackers set off during the New Year. Serenity, who had just arrived, was a little dumbfounded when she saw this scene. However, she quickly took out her phone to take a video. Zachary suddenly stretched out his big hand and took her phone away. He said in a low voice, ¡°Go and help your sister. I¡®ll take a video as evidence. ¡± Zachary did not want to get his hands dirty by beating up the mistress, so he asked to be in charge of filming. of course, if the pair of scumbags dared to hurt his wife, Zachary would not be afraid to get his hands dirty and teach the cheating pair a lesson. Chapter 394 Chapter 394 Chapter 394 Serenity turned around and rushed into the room. Hank had already returned to his senses. He rushed forward and kicked Liberty, who was sitting on Jessica. Serenity was furious when she saw this as she rushed in, so she kicked Hank She practiced kickboxing and dealt with Noah Hunt and the gangsters, so she had the upper hand. When she kicked Hank with all her strength, Hank, who had just kicked Liberty, fell to the ground too. ¡°Liberty!¡± Serenity stepped forward to help her sister. Hank got up quickly to help Jessica. He pointed at Liberty and Serenity as he yelled angrily, ¡°Liberty, what the hell are you doing?!¡± Liberty beat up Jessica and was panting heavily. When she heard her husband¡®s roar, she was infuriated again. She yelled back, ¡°Hank Brown! How could you do this to me?! Because of you, I quit my job and stayed home to take care of our family. I raised our son for you, yet you betrayed me to be with this b*tch! You asked me what the hell was I doing, huh? I was beating up this b*tch!¡± After that, she charged in again. However, Hank stood in front of Jessica and pushed Liberty to prevent her from hitting Jessica again. He cursed at her. ¡°Liberty, stop! I don¡®t love you anymore. I¡®ve fallen out of love with you for a long time now. Just take a look in the mirror! You look like a shrew! What¡®s the use of being highly educated? Where are your manners?!¡± Liberty wanted tough in exasperation. Since she could not reach Jessica, she pped Hank in the face. ¡°I was forced to be a shrew because of you! You¡®re highly educated too, so why are you so shameless? She¡®s also educated, but where are her morals?! Don¡®t mention being educated because you two are a disgrace to intellectuals!¡± Hank was pped and instinctively wanted to retaliate, but Serenity hurriedly pulled her sister away, so he missed. ¡°Hank Brown! Don¡®t you dare touch my sister!¡± Serenity red at Hank. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You wronged my sister and betrayed your marriage, yet you have the nerve to use my sister?! I told you before, if you don¡®t want to be with my sister anymore, you can ask her for a divorce. Don¡®t do all these underhanded things behind her back! ¡°Do you really think my sister can¡®t survive without you? Don¡®t think so highly of yourself! My sister is just getting out of her suffering by leaving a scumbag like you!¡± Hank was speechless from being reprimanded by Serenity, but he kept protecting Jessica to prevent Serenity and Liberty from hurting Jessica again. ¡°Hank Brown, you¡®ve wronged me!¡± Liberty suddenly slumped onto the ground and cried as she mmed her fists on the floor. ¡°You said you¡®d treat me well forever! You said we¡®d grow old together! A lifetime is a long time, but you¡®ve already betrayed me. I¡®m still young, yet you¡®ve found a new love¡­ ¡°You b*stard! Scumbag! *sshole! You¡®ve done me dirty¡­¡± Liberty¡®s cries gave Jessica a sense of aplishment. Even if Jessica was beaten into a pulp, she still felt good. As for Hank, he did not show the slightest hint of guilt even when his wife used him of cheating. He said coldly, ¡°Get out if you want to cry! This is a hotel, so don¡®t disturb other guests. Since you¡®ve already seen us together, I won¡®t hide it from you anymore. I told you that I don¡®t love you anymore. I hate you! If it weren¡®t for Sonny, I would¡¯ve divorced you a long time ago. ¡°Now, I can no longer suffer or let the woman I love suffer just because of Sonny. Liberty, let¡®s get a divorce!¡± When Liberty heard Hank bringing up the divorce, she stopped crying and banging the ground. She instantly jumped up, stepped forward, and stretched out his hand to hold Hank¡®s arm tightly. In fact, Liberty wanted to grab his cor, but this scumbag was half¨Cnaked, so there was no cor to grab. How great would it be if he was still wearing a shirt and tie? That way, she could strangle him by pulling his tie. ¡°Hank, you want to divorce me?! Are you abandoning your wife for this b*tch?! We¡®ve known each other for twelve years! How many years have you known her? We dated for seven years and were married for three years. When did you get together with her?¡± Liberty kicked Jessica, who stumbled back. ¡°You shameless b*tch! Homewrecker!¡± Hank broke free from Liberty¡®s grasp and pushed Liberty when he saw his sweetheart being kicked by his wife. Liberty stepped back and fell to the ground. Serenity helped her sister up and was so livid she wanted to rush over to beat up the scumbag and the b*tch. However, Liberty held her back. Chapter 395 Chapter 395 Chapter 395 Liberty shook her head at Serenity. No matter how much Liberty fought and argued with Hank, it was a fight between husband and wife. At most, the Browns would pick Hank up and take him back to their home to recuperate. If Liberty hit Jessica, it would be seen as a wife hitting a mistress. Everyone would only think that it was well¨Cdeserved, and Jessica would not do anything to her because of guilt. However, if Serenity made her move and beat up Hank and Jessica to stand up for Liberty, the Browns would sue Serenity and ask her to pay for the medical expenses. Jessica would do the same. Liberty did not want her sister to be taken advantage of. She pulled Serenity back tightly and said in a low voice, ¡°Just trust me. I can solve this. ¡± Serenity and Zachary only had to take photos and videos as evidence for Liberty. ¡°Hank. ¡± Liberty wiped away her tears and asked him, ¡°You really want a divorce?¡± Hank said sternly, ¡°Yes, I want to divorce you!¡± ¡°Sonny is still so young. How could you abandon us?¡± Hank did not have the slightest hesitation as he said coldly,¡± Liberty, go home first. Let¡®s calm down and talk about the divorce on Saturday. ¡± Liberty red at Jessica with gritted teeth. Hank stood in front of Jessica again for fear that Liberty would rush over and beat her up. ¡°Liberty, let me¡­¡± ¡°Seren, let¡®s go!¡± Liberty grabbed her sister, red at the cheating pair, and said, ¡± Hank, I¡®ll wait for you this Saturday toe back and talk about the divorce!¡± After speaking, she forcibly dragged her sister out of the room. Seeing Zachary, Liberty asked softly, ¡°Have you taken any shots?¡± When Liberty was beating up the scumbags, she noticed her brother¨Cinw was capturing evidence on the phone. Zachary nodded. ¡°Let¡®s go. ¡± Liberty held her sister¡®s hand and walked away while Zachary followed in silence. The three of them entered the elevator. Liberty no longer looked as tough as she did earlier and leaned against the elevator wall weakly. She was ready for divorce, but when she saw Hank protecting Jessica like that, Liberty felt despondent because Hank had hit her, scolded her, and filed for a divorce for Jessica¡®s sake. They had known each other for twelve years, dated for seven and married for three. All of that was about to end. Was marriage really the graveyard for romance? ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Serenity walked over and hugged her sister. ¡°I¡®m fine. ¡± Liberty did not even want to cry anymore. It was not worth crying because of that scumbag. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. Liberty cried earlier as an act, but also to vent her emotions. No matter what, they had been in a rtionship for twelve years, so it would be a lie if she said she was not upset about the divorce. She needed to vent, so she used the acting opportunity to vent out all the pain she felt. . Chapter 396 Chapter 396 Chapter 396 After tonight, Liberty would no longer be sad or cry for Hank. ¡°Sonny!¡± Liberty remembered her son and was suddenly anxious. ¡°Liberty, I asked Mrs. Lane to take care of Sonny. Sonny usually sleeps through the night until dawn anyway. ¡± Sonny was naughty, but at times, he could be very well¨Cbehaved. It was especially true when he slept at night. He would usually sleep till morning unless he was ufortable. Only then did Liberty feel relieved upon hearing that. ¡°Seren, Zachary, how did you two find me?¡± Liberty only thought about this question after she was assured that her son was in good hands. Serenity gave her sister an earful. ¡°Liberty, we¡®re sisters. Since our parents passed away, we¡®ve depended on each other for fifteen years and have discussed everything together. This time, you excluded me, so how could I rest assured? ¡°Zachary¡®s friend who helped collect evidence of Hank¡®s infidelity is highly capable. He quickly found out that Hank was here as soon as Zachary asked him, so we rushed over. ¡°Liberty, no matter what happens in the future, you have to tell me, okay? Don¡®t try to carry the burden alone. I¡®m all grown up now, and I¡®m no longer the little girl who you have to protect. ¡± After a moment of silence, Liberty said, ¡°Earlier when I pulled you back to stop you from beating up those scumbags because I was ¨C afraid they¡®d sue you for intentional injury and ask you to pay for their medical expenses. No matter how much they did me dirty, it¡®s illegal to beat someone up. ¡°It¡®s different if I beat them up because they wronged me, so they¡®ll have a guilty conscience. They will only suck it up after being beaten and scolded by me, so they won¡®t dare ask me for compensation. ¡°Seren, just trust me on this. I can handle it. If I really need your help, I¡®ll definitelye to you. ¡± Back when their parents died, Liberty was only fifteen years old, and she was able to bring her sister up and survive their rtives¡® oppression. Now when facing her husband¡®s infidelity, Liberty was confident that she could handle her own affairs without involving her sister. After more than three years of marriage, Liberty tolerated everything because of love. Once their love disappeared and their marriage broken, Liberty would not tolerate it any longer and would retaliate.All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. She wanted to let the pair of scumbags know that she was not one to be bullied. They recorded on video tonight¡®s incident, so Liberty could use Hank on a moral level, and everyone would also stand on her side. Serenity hugged her sister again. Liberty pushed her sister away and frowned before asking, ¡°Seren, have you been drinking? I can smell alcohol on your body. ¡± Serenity was speechless. She only drank two bottles of beer. How could Liberty smell alcohol from her? Oh! Serenity did not shower. No wonder Liberty could still smell the alcohol on her body. ¡°I¡­ I just drank two bottles of beer when I went out with Zachary for supper. ¡± Liberty said to her sister, ¡°You should drink less in the future. ¡± She turned to her brother¨Cinw. ¡°Zachary, you should watch her. She has a low alcohoal tolerance and gets drunk easily. Drinking too much is bad for her health, so don¡®t let her drink in the future. Don¡®t spoil her too much. ¡± Zachary quickly said, ¡°I¡®m sorry, Liberty. It¡®s my fault. I ordered the beers for her. ¡± ¡°I know. If she ordered, she would¡®ve ordered something stronger, not beer. She likes to drink even though she can¡®t handle it. When she was young, she secretly drank my dad¡®s alcohol when my dad was drinking. ¡± Liberty recalled a memory and said, ¡°I remember that day. It was the first of May when my parents were home for a public holiday. Mom prepared shot sses of vodka to drink with Dad, and Seren secretly drank them while my parents weren¡®t looking. ¡°After drinking the vodka, Seren was afraid of being scolded, so she poured water into the shot sses. ¡± Liberty suddenlyughed and said, ¡°When Mom returned to serve the ¡®vodka¡® to Dad, he drank it and comined, saying that the small town¡®s grocer was selling fake alcohol. That newly bought bottle of vodka didn¡®t taste or smell anything like alcohol. It tasted like water instead. ¡°Mom didn¡®t believe him and said that it was impossible to get rid of the smell of alcohol even if they diluted it. So, she took a shot, and like Dad, she scolded the small town¡®s grocer for selling fake alcohol, Seren laughed so much in a corner that her stomach hurt. ¡± Serenity was embarrassed. Chapter 397 Chapter 397 Chapter 397 Liberty believed in Zachary more than she did in Serenity. Liberty even told Serenity¡®s embarrassing story of her secretly drinking the vodka when she was young. Zachary looked at Serenity with such an intense gaze that Serenity wanted to find a hole to burrow in. ¡°Liberty, why would you bring that up? It¡®s been so many years!¡± Liberty even shared this with Zachary. Liberty smiled and said, ¡°You climbed into bed after your meal that day and slept all day. You can¡®t drink, but you like to drink anyway. You¡®ll sleep like a log after drinking too. ¡°Zachary, just remember not to let her drink when it¡®s not a special asion. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips and smiled. ¡°I¡®ll remember. ¡± Liberty was reminiscing about their younger days, which made everyoneugh. The gloom from earlier slowly faded away. Divorce was no big deal. The earth would not stop rotating because someone was missing. Even without Hank, Liberty could live a good life. After walking out of the hotel, Liberty looked up at the dark sky and turned to her sister and brother¨Cin¨C law. ¡°Come on, I¡®ll treat you two to supper¡­ I mean, breakfast. Let¡®s celebrate my singlehood in advance!¡± It was already five o¡®clock in the morning. Serenity and Zachary exchanged nces but did not reject Liberty¡®s invite. The three of them went for breakfast, then Zachary drove his sister ¨Cinw back to Bright Boulevard before he took his wife home. It was dawn when they got home. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± When Zachary looked at her, Serenity said gratefully, ¡°Mr. York, thank you. ¡± Zachary stepped in front of Serenity, stretched out his hand, and held her arMs. When Serenity looked up, he pulled her into his arms and hugged her tightly. He then let go of her slightly and looked down as he said gently, ¡°We¡®re husband and wife, so don¡®t mind the courtesy. ¡± Serenity looked at him for a moment. She suddenly put her arms around his neck and wanted to kiss him. Somehow, Zachary was not as domineering as usual. Instead, he covered her mouth and stared at her with his dark eyes. He asked softly, ¡°Are you kissing me as a reward, or because you like me?¡± Serenity blinked. ¡°I just felt like kissing you. I didn¡®t think that much. ¡± ¡°If you¡®re kissing me as a reward¡­ I can ept, with reluctance, but I¡®ll feel ufortable about it. ¡± Zachary wanted to say that he would refuse if her kiss was a reward. However, he changed his mind as soon as those words were on the tip of his tongue. He was afraid she would never kiss him again if he said something like that. It was just like the first time she went to his office to pick ¨C him up from work. He told her once, and to this day, she never visited him at the office again. This woman drove him crazy at times. After some thought, Serenity said, ¡°I don¡®t know why I wanted to kiss you, but I just couldn¡®t help it. I just thought of it and did it. If you think the kiss is a reward, I have nothing to say to that. ¡± She touched Zachary¡®s face. ¡°Don¡®t forget to wash off your birthmark¡¯. It really affects your beauty. ¡± ¡°I¡®m a man. Don¡®t call me beautiful. ¡°And how should I clean it?¡± ¡°Just wash it off with soap water. ¡± Zachary asked again, ¡°How much water and soap should I use? How long should I wash it for?¡± Serenity frowned and said, ¡°Just look at the bathroom mirror while you wash it off. You can stop when there are no more stains on your face. How could you ask this kind of stupid question? It makes you seem dumb. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips and said nothing while his dark eyes stared straight at Serenity. Chapter 398 Chapter 398 Chapter 398 Serenity came to a realization after being stared at and asked Zachary tentatively, ¡°Mr. York, do you want me to wash your face for you?¡± ¡°I painted my face ck for your sake. ¡± That meant he was holding her responsible. Serenity was stunned and felt like this man was bing more shameless and reckless. ¡°Fine, I¡®ll clean it up for you since you did it for my sake. Why didn¡®t you just paint your entire face ck in the first ce?¡± Serenity said as she pulled him into the kitchen. Zachary followed her and stopped after two steps. He frowned and asked Serenity, ¡°Why are you bringing me to the kitchen?¡°. ¡°There¡®s a tap in the kitchen. I¡®m forbidden to enter your room, so how can I wash your face if I don¡®t take you to the kitchen? Or you can wait here. I¡®ll get a wet towel and wipe your face clean. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He shot himself in the foot, and it hurt so much. After a moment of silence, he said indifferently, ¡°I have a men¡®s facial cleanser that I often use in my bathroom. It should be able to wash off these stains. ¡± He then turned around and walked toward his room. After pushing the door open, he turned his head and ordered Serenity, ¡°Come over and help me wash my face!¡± Serenity snorted and walked over. ¡°Zachary, you¡®re the one who invited me into your room! I¡¯m not sneaking in, so you can¡®t hold this against me if we quarrel in the future. ¡°I¡®ve always kept my promise and acted ording to the agreement. ¡± Zachary was speechless. When she got close, he could not help but flick her forehead and said, ¡°Are you hoping for us to quarrel again?¡± ¡°Quarrels are inevitable when living together. Which married couple doesn¡®t quarrel?¡± She then thought, ¡®Especially when it¡®s someone as petty as you¡­ You¡®ll delete my WhatsApp whenever we get into a fight and give me the cold shoulder. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡® Serenity could not guarantee that the two of them would no longer have conflicts in the days toe. Zachary opened his mouth, but there was no way to refute it. He turned around and walked into the bathroom grumpily. Serenity mumbled at the back, ¡°Why does he even want to wash it off? His face is just as dark anyway¡­¡± Zachary suddenly stopped in his tracks and turned to stare at her before asking in a deep voice, ¡°What are you mumbling about?¡± ¡°I said that you¡®re more handsome than a movie star. It¡®s a pity that you¡®re not in showbiz. Why don¡®t you be a celebrity? I can be your agent! I promise that you¡®ll be so popr and earn so much that your hands will cramp from counting cash!¡± Zachary red at her again. ¡°Keep up with me!¡± She thought he was deaf and could not hear her badmouthing him behind his back. Hand cramps from counting money? Zachary did not have to be a celebrity to do that. He had already earned enough that she could count until her hands susfered from cramps. She could even use cash as her wallpaper and carpet! Serenity caught up to him obediently and entered the ensuite bathroom in his room. She found his bathroomrger than hers. There was arge bathtub that could amodate two people. Huh? Her thoughts drifted a little far and a little lustful too, so she quickly stopped those random ideas. When Serenity snapped back to reality, she saw Zachary taking off his clothes. Why was he taking off his clothes when he only needed to wash his face? How should she react? Should she cover her face and scream? Or relish the view? Chapter 399 Chapter 399 Chapter 399 Zachary turned his head and saw Serenity savoring the sight of him. When Serenity noticed that he was looking at her, she asked,¡± Are you gonna strip further?¡± She pointed at his pants to tell him that he had not taken off his pants yet. Zachary was speechless. He took off his shirt because he did not want it to get wet when he was washing his face. What was she thinking about when he took off his shirt? Zachary turned around and took a step to stand in front of Serenity. When he was in such proximity, Serenity reached out and wanted to touch his lean pecs. She praised him, ¡°You have a great body since you exercise so regrly. ¡± Zachary grabbed her wandering hand to stop her from touching him. He warned her with a dark expression and said in a deep voice, ¡°. Serenity, do you know the consequences of touching me?¡± Before she could answer, he flicked her forehead with his other hand. This had be a habit of his. Zachary enjoyed flicking Serenity¡®s forehead after doing so for a few times. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Of course, he controlled his strength well so it was not too painful. Serenity smiled. ¡°Didn¡®t you take off your clothes for me to appreciate your body? You won¡®t lose anything if I touch you. Why did you take off your clothes in front of me?¡± ¡°I¡®m afraid you¡®ll get my shirt wet when you wash my face. That¡®s why I took it off. What¡®s in that mind of yours? Should I put my shirt back on? If you wash my face and get my shirt wet, you¡®ll be responsible for washing all my clothes in the future. ¡± ¡°Then it¡®s better if you¡®re naked. I promise not to touch you. I¡®ll just take a look, it¡®s quite a sight¡­¡± As she spoke, she nced downward. Zachary instinctively put his legs together and stared at her gloomily. He was too careless. This girl used to enjoy teasing him from time to time. Now that he took off his shirt in front of her, she had taken the opportunity to tease him. Otherwise, the sun would rise from the west. ¡°Hahaha!¡± His reaction amused Serenity. Sheughed so hard that Zachary¡®s face turned darker than the ck marker stain. Serenity would only be more audacious if he did nothing to teach her a lesson. Zachary grabbed the girl who wasughing at him uncontrobly and lifted her to sit atop the sink. He then closed in and kissed her aggressively to stop herughter. Her unrestrainedughter gave him an excuse to kiss her. Serenity was dumbfounded. When she came to her senses, Zachary had already let go of her and pulled her back to her feet. He brought out his everyday facial cleanser, put it in her hand, and gazed at her intently. ¡°I still have to go to work, so please hurry up. ¡± Serenity blinked her eyes rapidly. ¡°Are you trying to seduce me?¡± ¡°If blinking is seducing, you¡®re also seducing me! But I¡®m not so easily seduced. You¡®d have to seduce me every day so I can feel it. ¡± Zachary could not help but smile. Serenity took the facial cleanser and looked at the brand. She said casually, ¡°This brand is very expensive. ¡± Zachary, who was enjoying the beauty treatment, said nkly, ¡°I was a bachelor and didn¡®t need to support my family. I was also too busy at work to spend money elsewhere, so I didn¡®t get to spend my monthly sry. I¡®m not short of money, so I use the best skincare products. ¡°Men and women should treat themselves well because we only have one body. ¡± ¡°You don¡®t have to give your parents living expenses?¡± Chapter 400 Chapter 400 Chapter 400 Zachary was silent for a moment before he said, ¡°My parents still have ie, and there are a lot of flowers and fruit trees on our family¡®s farnd. All rights ? N?velDrama.Org. Every year, we make a lot of money by selling flowers and fruits. We¡®re not filthy rich, but we¡®re also not poor either. ¡°Even if the elders are retired, they¡®ll run some small businesses that aren¡®t so profitable and tiring, but they can pass the time and make their lives feel more fulfilling. ¡°I¡®ve given my parents money, but they declined. I gave it to them once, but they returned twice as much to me so I can save it for my wife. ¡± Serenity thought of thest time she met her father¨Cinw. Although he was old, he was a well¨Ckept gentleman who had excellentposure. Her mother¨Cinw did not really like Serenity but was graceful not to target her. She spoke gently and looked youthful. Serenity felt that outsiders would think they were sisters when they were to walk side by side. Serenity and Zachary had been married for a while. Among Zachary¡®s family members, Serenity got along best with Grandma May. She had only met the others when they were invited to dinnerst time. Zachary¡®s family seldom appeared thereafter. She had no idea where they lived either. Grandma May had a great rtionship with Serenity. When Serenity asked Grandma May where they lived, Grandma May told her the name of a mountain and said that they lived on the top of ¨C that mountain. There were many houses there, and Serenity did not know which one was theirs. Grandma Mayter told Serenity that Zachary would bring her back for a visit one day. However, Zachary had never mentioned taking her back to his hometown. Serenity thought about the agreement and stopped asking about her husband¡®s birthce. She felt that if they could not grow old together, knowing where her husband¡®s hometown was would not matter. However, it was undeniable that everyone in Zachary¡®s family was extremely well¨Ceducated. Zachary¡®s brothers and cousins were tremendously well¨Cmannered and showed her due respect. ¡°Your parents are very open¨Cminded. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°The elders in my family are all very open minded. ¡± Serenity agreed. After a while, the stain on Zachary¡®s face was washed off. ¡°Don¡®t paint your face like this again. Luckily, we went to a hotel. If we were out shopping, children would think that they saw a ghost, and you would¡®ve scared them to death. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°You didn¡®t rest wellst night. Do you still have to go to work? Can you ask for a day off? Why don¡®t you take the day off to make up for your sleep?¡± Serenity thought she could take a nap at the storeter. ¡°I have a meeting in the morning, so I can¡®t take the day off. ¡± Serenity looked at him for a long time and said apologetically,¡± I¡®m sorry you couldn¡®t rest well. ¡± ¡°Then how will you make it up to me?¡± Serenity looked at the time and said, ¡°You still have an hour before you need to go to work, so you should take a nap first while I cook up yourpensation. ¡± What she meant was she would make him breakfast. Zachary smiled and did not stop her. When she turned to leave, he reminded her. ¡°You should go back to your room and take a shower first. You slept so soundlyst night that you wouldn¡®t wake up no matter how I tried to call out to you or push you. I had to carry you upstairs. ¡± Serenity¡®s face inexplicably turned red. She fled right after she hummed a response. 1 Zachary stood there and watched her slip away. After some thought, he murmured, ¡°Did she just blush? She ran away so fast!¡± He did not do anything and only told her that he carried her upstairsst night. Was that enough for her to blush? Zachary could not understand why she was shy because she did not even blush when he kissed her. A woman¡®s heart was truly unfathomable. Chapter 401 Chapter 401 Chapter 401 Serenity returned to her room and closed the door behind her. She leaned against it and touched her burning face. She had no clue why she blushed. Maybe she saw something when she apanied Liberty to catch Hank and Jessica in the actst night. After standing there for a while, Serenity hurriedly went into the shower because she had to make breakfast for Zacharyter. Before that, Serenity suddenly thought of Mrs. Lane and called her. After Mrs. Lane answered the phone, Serenity said, ¡°Mrs. Lane, you can take Sonny to my storeter, so you don¡¯t have to rush back. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± ¡°How¡¯s my sister?¡± ¡°She¡¯s acting like she¡¯s okay and says she¡¯s going to work after breakfast. I¡¯m making a cup of coffee for her to boost her energy because she didn¡¯t sleep wellst night. ¡± Serenity felt sorry for her sister, but she also knew that it was not appropriate for Liberty to take the day off. After all, Liberty had only just started work a few days ago. ¡°Ask my sister to be careful when she rides her bike to work. ¡± ¡°I will. ¡± Serenity hung up the phone before heading for her shower. When she was done, she habitually walked to the dresser and sat down, wanting to brush her hair. Something was missing from the dresser. Where was the golden hairpin she drew? That was the sample she sketched because she wanted to make some hair essories to sell online. It took her two nights to draw it. Serenitybed her hair while looking for her drawing. She searched for a while but could not find it. ¡°How can it disappear? I put it on the dresser, and no one has been in my room¡­¡± Serenity recalled what Zachary said about how soundly she sleptst night for him to carry her upstairs. Zachary was in her room. However, it was a drawing of a golden hairpin. Why would a big man like Zachary take her golden hairpin? Moreover, it was only a drawing, not even the real thing. He had no reason to take her drawing. 1/2 Mrs. Lane had been following Serenity to the store since she started work. Even if Mrs. Lane came back before Serenityst night, Mrs. Lane probably would not have thrown away her drawing as scrap paper, right? Serenity thought about it for a while and did not call to ask Mrs. Lane about it. It was just a drawing, so there was no need to question Mrs. Lane on her second day of work. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. That would easily cause a misunderstanding with Mrs. Lane. Worstes to worst, Serenity could spend two more nights redrawing it. With that thought, Serenity went to make breakfast. Zachary did not sleepst night and still had to go to work as usualter, so Serenity made at cup of coffee for him. When the couple had breakfast together, Serenity asked, ¡°Mr. York, did you see the drawing on my dresser when you carried ine back to my roomst night?¡± Zachary looked up at her and did not answer right away. He was waiting for her to continue. ¡°I think my handicrafts are a bit monotonous, so I thought of adding some new designs to my online store vintage hair essories. But I rarely do these, so I drew a sample to start off. That drawing is a sample of a golden hairpin. ¡± Zachary thought, ¡®I see¡­¡® He replied honestly, ¡°I saw that drawing. You drew it excellently, and it looked like a photo. ¡± ¡°Where is that drawing? I just found out that it¡¯s missing. ¡± ¡°I flushed it down the toilet. ¡± ¡°What?!¡± Serenity was stunned. ¡°How could you¡­¡± ¡°When I took you back to your roomst night, you suddenly sat up and threw up on my hand as soon as I put you down. So, I grabbed a piece of paper and wiped my hands with it, only to find outter that it was a drawing. But since it was already soiled, I flushed it into the toilet along with other tissues. ¡± Serenity was speechless and thought, ¡®Did I throw upst night?¡® Chapter 402 Chapter 402 Chapter 402 Serenity had no recollection of it at all. She only drank two bottles of beer. Although she fell asleep afterward, she was not considered drunk. How could she vomit if she was not drunk? Did she vomit because she ate too muchst night? Serenity was a little skeptical. However, it was just a drawing anyway, and Zachary had no reason to lie to her. Hence, Serenity dropped the subject. Material ? of N?velDrama.Org. She would heed Liberty¡¯s advice and drink less in the future. ¡°Do you want to get it back?¡± ¡°How can you get it back? Even if you do, it¡¯s all mushed up. It¡¯s okay, I¡¯ll just redraw it. ¡± Zachary said apologetically, ¡°I didn¡¯t know that drawing was so important. I just grabbed it without a second look. Next time, don¡¯t put your drawing on the dresser. It¡¯s too close to the bed. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity thought to herself, ¡®Well, this kind of thing can¡¯t happen every day¡­¡® She would not drink every day either. ¡°Mr. York, you don¡¯t have to feel sorry. It¡¯s my fault for not putting it away properly. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll redraw it. ¡± ¡°I can buy a real golden hairpin for you as a sample. ¡± Serenity quickly declined his offer. ¡°No need. I¡¯ll just draw the sample again myself. ¡± Zachary had no choice but to give up. How could he have suspected that she married him at first sight for his money? Maybe it was because his grandmother kept nagging at him every day and because Serenity had saved his grandmother, so he thought Serenity was asking for a reward. That was why Zachary had such a prejudice against Serenity in the beginning. He misunderstood her and put his guard up against her. Zachary also signed a damned agreement that he wanted to use to restrain her. Who knew she abided by the agreement, and he was the one being restrained? He thought about how he destroyed the agreementst night and happily ate the breakfast that his wife prepared for him. He instantly felt a burden being lifted from his chest and no longer felt that much pressure. After breakfast, Serenity cleared the dishes while Zachary took the cup of coffee that Serenity made for him and walked out to the balcony. He sat on the swing and drank the coffee leisurely. Although it was instant coffee, Zachary thought it was the best coffee he had ever had. The sun gradually rose. In Wiltspoon, it did not feel cold in November as long as the sun was out. Serenity was still wearing short sleeves during the day. Ladies could also be seen everywhere in skirts and dresses on the street. Serenity rarely wore skirts and dresses. Zachary suddenly yearned to see how she looked in a dress. She must be gorgeous. ¡°I thought you went to work. ¡± Serenity, who had washed the dishes, came out to admire the flowers like she always did and saw Zachary sitting on the swing chair as he drank the cup of coffee. She smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t you think I bought the right chair?¡± ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s nice. ¡± Serenity sat down next to him and looked at the flowers on the flower stand. ¡°Well, that¡¯s only because your balcony is big enough. If it¡¯s small, it would¡¯ve been a waste of space to nt flowers, not to mention a swing chair. ¡°Can you get used to drinking this coffee?¡® ¡°It¡¯s fine as long as it has the same effect. ¡± Serenity leaned back on the chair. ¡°I just ced an order online for an automatic coffee machine and some coffee beans just now. I won¡¯t let you drink instant coffee again because it just feels wrong. ¡± ww Zachary admitted. ¡°This is the first time I¡¯m drinking instant coffee. ¡± ¡°I figured. You¡¯ll just have to put up with it today. ¡± Zachary worked in a bigpany and was a manager there, so his coffee must be freshly ground. The couple sat on the swing chair on the balcony and went out together after Zachary finished drinking the cup of coffee. Zachary sent his wife to the store before heading straight to the office. Chapter 403 Chapter 403 Chapter 403 Josh was waiting for Zachary at the entrance of the office building. His pearly whites weed Zachary. ¡°I thought you weren¡¯ting to the office today. ¡± Josh followed Zachary inside while the bodyguards stopped at the entrance of the office building. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°If I don¡¯te in and ask you to preside over the meeting, you¡¯ll justin about how much you must¡¯ve owed me in the past life that you¡¯re enved by me now. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re quite self¨Caware and know that you¡¯ve been enving me this whole time, huh?¡± Zachary turned his head to look at him. ¡°I¡¯m just providing a stage for you to perform. If I didn¡¯t, would you be able to get the attention of your patriarch?¡± The younger generation of the Bucham family was not inferior to the York family. Josh stood out among the Bucham family¡¯s younger generation mainly because of his capability, his friendship with Zachary, and his position in the top management of York Corporation. He was the most valued nephew of the Bucham family¡¯s patriarch, so he had a very high status within the family. Josh was not interested in bing the next patriarch and was very close to the patriarch¡¯s son. The two of them were like biological brothers. Josh giggled. ¡°You¡¯re just training me to be your chief of intelligence. It just so happens that I love gossip, and those private affairs you asked me to investigate are all gossip¨Cworthy news. If I¡¯m ever short of money, I can make a fortune by selling one of your personal scoops to the paparazzi. ¡± The two men entered the elevator together. Zachary retorted, ¡°You¡¯ll only be short of money if you transfer all your property to me. Otherwise, you¡¯ll neverck money. ¡± Although Josh had a thing for gossip and drama, he was reliable and tight¨Clipped. Otherwise, Zachary would not be able to trust Josh to this extent. Clive Stone tried to poach Josh countless times, but he failed to do so. So many people tried to get Josh drunk so Josh could spill the York family¡¯s internal secrets, but they all failed too. ¡°You have so much money that you can¡¯t possibly spend in your lifetime, yet you still want me to transfer mine to you?! By the way, did you enjoy catching the scandalous pairst night?¡± Since they were the only ones in the elevator, Josh asked about it openly. ¡°And why didn¡¯t you ask me to help? I was dreaming about it all night!¡± For those who liked gossip, it was incredibly frustrating not to be able to watch the drama unfold. ¡°It¡¯s at the Stone Group¡¯s hotel. You¡¯ll just attract unnecessary attention if you go. You might even be in today¡¯s headlines. ¡± Josh said reluctantly, ¡°As if no one will recognize you if you go¡­¡± ¡°I put on makeup. ¡± Josh was lost for words. Well, he did not think of that. ¡°Was there a fight?¡± ¡°Yup. ¡± ¡°Was it amusing?¡± Zachary nced at him again. Seeing Josh¡¯s eager face, he smiled and said, ¡°Yeah. My sister¨Cin w was really good at acting, and her fighting skills canpare to my Serenity¡¯s. ¡± ¡°Wow, so she¡¯s be YOUR Serenity, huh?¡± Josh locked in on the keyword. ¡°Otherwise, could she be yours?¡± Josh quickly said, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t dare make her mine. Your wife is exceptional at fighting. ¡± ¡°She practiced kickboxing. ¡± Josh sang her praises. ¡°Wow, brawn and brains! Zack, you definitely picked up a treasure. Grandma May introduced such a good woman to you only because you¡¯re her grandson. Back then, you looked like the Grim Reaper in the office every day when Grandma May nagged you about marrying Serenity. ¡°I¡¯m also a capable man, but Grandma May didn¡¯t think to introduce such a brawny and brainy. girl to me. By the way, does Jasmine know how to fight?¡± Chapter 404 Zachary looked at Josh speechlessly. Josh touched his nose embarrassedly and said, ¡°I¡¯m suddenly looking forward to the blind. date with Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll arrange for you two to meet this Saturday afternoon. You can decide on the location and. let me know once you¡¯ve booked the ce. Then I¡¯ll get Serenity to inform Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s the day after tomorrow! Zack, look at me now. Do I look good? Do I have e on my face? Is my beard too long?¡± The elevator arrived at the top floor. Zachary waited for the elevator door to open and left without Josh, who was like a peacock ready to spread its train of feathers. Josh hurriedly followed in his footsteps. ¡°Mr. York, Mr. Bucham. ¡± Mr. Chaplin stood up and greeted the two bosses. Both of them nodded in response to Mr. Chaplin¡¯s greeting. After entering Zachary¡¯s office, Zachary pointed to the door of his lounge and said, ¡°I have a mirror in the lounge, so you can go in and take a look in the mirror. ¡± Josh pulled out his chair and sat in front of his desk. He smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯m still confident in how I look. Ms. Sox will fall in love with me at first sight. ¡± ¡°Serenity sees me every day but still hasn¡¯t fallen in love with me yet. Jasmine Sox is her best friend, and they have simr preferences and temperaments. ¡® 11 Josh said, ¡°Don¡¯t rain on my parade! You¡¯re a lousy matchmaker. You should praise Jasmine like no other. ¡± ¡°How could I describe her if she¡¯s like no other?¡± Josh opened his mouth but could not refute it. After a long while, he said, ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re either mute or sharp¨Ctongued. I really don¡¯t know what to do with you. ¡± ¡°Anyway, send someone to watch Hank Brown and his family, as well as Jessica Yates and hers. He asked my sister¨Cinw for a divorce. A scumbag will definitely do something before the divorce is finalized. ¡± . ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ve always had someone watching them. ¡± ¡°Then what are you doing sitting here?¡± ¡°There¡¯s nothing else?¡± Josh felt the news that he received was not enough to satisfy his thirst for gossip. Zachary wanted to pick him up and throw him out the window. Seeing that Zachary stopped talking, Josh said with a smile, ¡°Fine, let¡¯s talk about work. Would you like a cup of coffee?¡± Trang ch? ¡°I just had coffee. ¡± ¡°Right¡­ You¡¯re a married man, so your wife can take care of you. You don¡¯t have to worry about dying of hunger or thirst. ¡± Josh, who was used to being single, suddenly wanted to marry a woman he liked so he could enjoy the life of a married man too. After the two were done talking shop, Josh left Zachary¡¯s office. Zachary looked at the time. He had a meeting scheduled in ten minutes, so he used this spare time to call Duncan. Duncanughed heartily on the phone and asked his friend. ¡°Zachary, to what do I owe the pleasure?¡± ¡°I need to ask you for a favor. ¡± ¡°Is it about your sister¨Cinw? I hired her because of you the day she came for the interview, so everyone is already specting about our rtionship. She was also ostracized by her colleagues in the office. If you want me to take care of her again, I think she¡¯ll quit her job because she¡¯ll feel excluded. ¡± As the CEO of Lewis & Co. , Duncan was a well¨Crespected figure in thepany and knew everything that Liberty was going through at work. He did not stand up for Liberty again for fear that she would have a harder time in the office. ¡°How long is her probation?¡± ¡°Three months. ¡± Zachary was lost for words. Chapter 404 Chapter 404 Chapter 404 Josh was waiting for Zachary at the entrance of the office building. His pearly whites weed Zachary. ¡°I thought you weren¡¯ting to the office today. ¡± Josh followed Zachary inside while the bodyguards stopped at the entrance of the office building. ¡°If I don¡¯te in and ask you to preside over the meeting, you¡¯ll justin about how much you must¡¯ve owed me in the past life that you¡¯re enved by me now. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re quite self¨Caware and know that you¡¯ve been enving me this whole time, huh?¡± Zachary turned his head to look at him. ¡°I¡¯m just providing a stage for you to perform. If I didn¡¯t, would you be able to get the attention of your patriarch?¡± The younger generation of the Bucham family was not inferior to the York family. Josh stood out among the Bucham family¡¯s younger generation mainly because of his capability, his friendship with Zachary, and his position in the top management of York Corporation. He was the most valued nephew of the Bucham family¡¯s patriarch, so he had a very high status within the family. Josh was not interested in bing the next patriarch and was very close to the patriarch¡¯s son. The two of them were like biological brothers. Josh giggled. ¡°You¡¯re just training me to be your chief of intelligence. It just so happens that I love gossip, and those private affairs you asked me to investigate are all gossip¨Cworthy news. If I¡¯m ever short of money, I can make a fortune by selling one of your personal scoops to the paparazzi. ¡± The two men entered the elevator together. Zachary retorted, ¡°You¡¯ll only be short of money if you transfer all your property to me. Otherwise, you¡¯ll neverck money. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Although Josh had a thing for gossip and drama, he was reliable and tight¨Clipped. Otherwise, Zachary would not be able to trust Josh to this extent. Clive Stone tried to poach Josh countless times, but he failed to do so. So many people tried to get Josh drunk so Josh could spill the York family¡¯s internal secrets, but they all failed too. ¡°You have so much money that you can¡¯t possibly spend in your lifetime, yet you still want me to transfer mine to you?! By the way, did you enjoy catching the scandalous pairst night?¡± Since they were the only ones in the elevator, Josh asked about it openly. ¡°And why didn¡¯t you ask me to help? I was dreaming about it all night!¡± For those who liked gossip, it was incredibly frustrating not to be able to watch the drama unfold. ¡°It¡¯s at the Stone Group¡¯s hotel. You¡¯ll just attract unnecessary attention if you go. You might even be in today¡¯s headlines. ¡± Josh said reluctantly, ¡°As if no one will recognize you if you go¡­¡± ¡°I put on makeup. ¡± Josh was lost for words. Well, he did not think of that. ¡°Was there a fight?¡± ¡°Yup. ¡± ¡°Was it amusing?¡± Zachary nced at him again. Seeing Josh¡¯s eager face, he smiled and said, ¡°Yeah. My sister¨Cin w was really good at acting, and her fighting skills canpare to my Serenity¡¯s. ¡± ¡°Wow, so she¡¯s be YOUR Serenity, huh?¡± Josh locked in on the keyword. ¡°Otherwise, could she be yours?¡± Josh quickly said, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t dare make her mine. Your wife is exceptional at fighting. ¡± ¡°She practiced kickboxing. ¡± Josh sang her praises. ¡°Wow, brawn and brains! Zack, you definitely picked up a treasure. Grandma May introduced such a good woman to you only because you¡¯re her grandson. Back then, you looked like the Grim Reaper in the office every day when Grandma May nagged you about marrying Serenity. ¡°I¡¯m also a capable man, but Grandma May didn¡¯t think to introduce such a brawny and brainy. girl to me. By the way, does Jasmine know how to fight?¡± Chapter 404 Zachary looked at Josh speechlessly. Josh touched his nose embarrassedly and said, ¡°I¡¯m suddenly looking forward to the blind. date with Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll arrange for you two to meet this Saturday afternoon. You can decide on the location and. let me know once you¡¯ve booked the ce. Then I¡¯ll get Serenity to inform Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s the day after tomorrow! Zack, look at me now. Do I look good? Do I have e on my face? Is my beard too long?¡± The elevator arrived at the top floor. Zachary waited for the elevator door to open and left without Josh, who was like a peacock ready to spread its train of feathers. Josh hurriedly followed in his footsteps. ¡°Mr. York, Mr. Bucham. ¡± Mr. Chaplin stood up and greeted the two bosses. Both of them nodded in response to Mr. Chaplin¡¯s greeting. After entering Zachary¡¯s office, Zachary pointed to the door of his lounge and said, ¡°I have a mirror in the lounge, so you can go in and take a look in the mirror. ¡± Josh pulled out his chair and sat in front of his desk. He smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯m still confident in how I look. Ms. Sox will fall in love with me at first sight. ¡± ¡°Serenity sees me every day but still hasn¡¯t fallen in love with me yet. Jasmine Sox is her best friend, and they have simr preferences and temperaments. ¡® 11 Josh said, ¡°Don¡¯t rain on my parade! You¡¯re a lousy matchmaker. You should praise Jasmine like no other. ¡± ¡°How could I describe her if she¡¯s like no other?¡± Josh opened his mouth but could not refute it. After a long while, he said, ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re either mute or sharp¨Ctongued. I really don¡¯t know what to do with you. ¡± ¡°Anyway, send someone to watch Hank Brown and his family, as well as Jessica Yates and hers. He asked my sister¨Cinw for a divorce. A scumbag will definitely do something before the divorce is finalized. ¡± . ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ve always had someone watching them. ¡± ¡°Then what are you doing sitting here?¡± ¡°There¡¯s nothing else?¡± Josh felt the news that he received was not enough to satisfy his thirst for gossip. Zachary wanted to pick him up and throw him out the window. Seeing that Zachary stopped talking, Josh said with a smile, ¡°Fine, let¡¯s talk about work. Would you like a cup of coffee?¡± Trang ch? ¡°I just had coffee. ¡± ¡°Right¡­ You¡¯re a married man, so your wife can take care of you. You don¡¯t have to worry about dying of hunger or thirst. ¡± Josh, who was used to being single, suddenly wanted to marry a woman he liked so he could enjoy the life of a married man too. After the two were done talking shop, Josh left Zachary¡¯s office. Zachary looked at the time. He had a meeting scheduled in ten minutes, so he used this spare time to call Duncan. Duncanughed heartily on the phone and asked his friend. ¡°Zachary, to what do I owe the pleasure?¡± ¡°I need to ask you for a favor. ¡± ¡°Is it about your sister¨Cinw? I hired her because of you the day she came for the interview, so everyone is already specting about our rtionship. She was also ostracized by her colleagues in the office. If you want me to take care of her again, I think she¡¯ll quit her job because she¡¯ll feel excluded. ¡± As the CEO of Lewis & Co. , Duncan was a well¨Crespected figure in thepany and knew everything that Liberty was going through at work. He did not stand up for Liberty again for fear that she would have a harder time in the office. ¡°How long is her probation?¡± ¡°Three months. ¡± Zachary was lost for words. Chapter 405 Chapter 405 Chapter 405 ¡°That¡¯s because she¡¯s too fat. I asked her to run fiveps in the small park in front of the office. every day before reporting to work. She¡¯s not allowed to start work if she doesn¡¯t finish fiveps. I¡¯m forcing her to lose weight, but it won¡¯t be obvious after one month. That¡¯s why I gave her a three¨Cmonth probation. ¡± Zachary was speechless again. Duncan was a bit too nosy. He gave Liberty a job and even concerned himself with Liberty¡¯s figure. Duncan was truly the best boss in the world. ¡°Duncan, give her a month¡¯s probation. After she passed her probation, give her a sry increase. If you think she¡¯s not worth an increment, I¡¯ll fork out the increment every month and give it to you in private. ¡± ¡°She¡¯s only a clerk in the finance department, so no matter how much of an increment you give her, it won¡¯t be much. At most, it¡¯ll be a thousand dors, so what¡¯s the use of that?¡± ¡°A thousand dors might be nothing to you, but it¡¯s plenty of use to ordinary people. My sister¨Cinw is about to get divorced, and she wants to fight for her son¡¯s custody. A stable job and a stable ie will help her gain custody of her son. ¡± ¡°She used to be a finance manager in Waltham Electronics, so she¡¯s certainly capable. She¡¯s only a clerk in the finance department now, so it¡¯s a demotion for her. It won¡¯t be abrupt to give her an increment after her probation. I¡¯m not short of that sum of money, so you don¡¯t need to pay me back. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Unlike Josh, Duncan did not like to gossip. He noticed Zachary addressing Liberty as his sister inw and was not at all surprised. Liberty was Serenity¡¯s sister, and Serenity was Zachary¡¯s wife. Thus, Zachary calling Liberty his sister¨Cinw was not out of the ordinary. ¡°Thanks, Duncan. ¡± ¡°You don¡¯t need to thank me. Liberty is now my employee, so it¡¯s only right that I pay her sry. Is she getting a divorce?¡± ¡°Her husband cheated on her. ¡± Duncan said unsurprisingly, ¡°I met her twice before while she was walking on the street with her son. The second time I met her, she bought so many things, but her husband didn¡¯te to pick her up. I knew at that moment there was something wrong with her husband. ¡± If they were in a good rtionship, her husband would have gone to pick up his wife and son when he found out that his wife bought that many things. ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t worry. As long as she doesn¡¯t resign, I won¡¯t fire her. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m relieved that she works for you. I need to get into a meeting now. I¡¯ll buy you dinner someday. You cane over to my house and try my wife¡¯s cooking. Her home¨Ccooked meals are delicious. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re finally allowing us to see her, huh?¡± Duncan teased Zachary. He saw Serenity once before, but only her back. Duncan was curious if Serenity was as beautiful as a goddess because Zachary fell in love with her in just two months. Zachary smiled and did not say more. He hung up the call with Duncan. At the Brown family residence. ¡°You want to divorce Liberty?¡± Mr. Brown stared at his son who hade over after taking the day off. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say that you¡¯ll put up with her for Sonny¡¯s sake?¡± Hank lowered his head and was fixated on his smoking. Olivia came over with Lucas. She was sitting next to her husband and said, ¡°Why are you yelling? Don¡¯t scare Lucas. ¡± She softened her voice and asked her son, ¡°Hank, why¡¯d you mention divorce all of a sudden? Did you two fight again? Or did Liberty make a fuss because of what happened yesterday?¡± Chapter 406 Chapter 406 Chapter 406 ¡°Is Sonny alright?¡± Olivia was indeed a little concerned for her grandson after doing something like that anding home. Her other grandson, having fallen sick this time, had made it so that the whole family could not have peace. Just having a recurring fever alone was enough to worry everyone. Sonny was younger than Lucas by a year. If he had fallen sick too, who knew how much suffering the family would have been put through? ¡°He should be fine, I didn¡¯t go home and didn¡¯t see Sonny. I saw Liberty near the neighborhood going to work like normal. ¡± After a whole night of suffering and having beaten up both him and Jessica, Liberty could actually still go to work like nothing had happened. He was alright. Jessica was still cooped up in the hotel, too scared to leave and meet anybody because the handprint on her face had not faded away. Last night, after Liberty and her sister left, Jessica hugged him and cried for a very long time, saying it was all his fault she had to suffer such humiliation and making him feel pity for her. This strengthened his will to divorce Liberty. ¡°That¡¯s good. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. I don¡¯t have to worry then. I don¡¯t feel so good having done something like that either. No matter what, Sonny¡¯s still my biological grandson. It¡¯s that mother of his that¡¯s cruel. He¡¯s still so young, but she abandons him to go to work. ¡± Olivia ced all the me on Liberty. ¡°Hank, tell me why you want to divorce her right away. ¡± Hank took two puffs of his cigarette, then raised his head to look at his parents. He said feeling a little embarrassed, ¡°Jessica and I stayed the night at a hotelst night. Liberty called me, and because Jessica thought Liberty had something urgent to tell me about, she took the call on my behalf. ¡± ¡°Liberty actually found the hotel. She brought her sister along and the two of them blocked me and Jessica on our way out¡­ ¡°We fought very fiercely, and Liberty hit Jessica really badly. Until now, she doesn¡¯t dare leave the hotel and meet anyone! Mom, I don¡¯t want to be with Liberty anymore. I can¡¯t do it even just for another day! I want to divorce her!¡± Hank¡¯s parents were speechless. Mr. Brown suddenly stood up and swung his fist at Hank. Hank didn¡¯t expect his father would hit him, and he so squarely met the fist head¨Con. ¡°Old man, what are you doing?!¡± Olivia hurriedly set Lucas down and got up to pull her husband away. She stopped him from continuing and exined, ¡°Last time, Hank already said that he no longer loved Liberty and just hadn¡¯t brought up the idea of divorce for Sonny¡¯s sake. With her in that state, Liberty¡¯s no longer a match for Hank either. ¡± ¡°Am I wrong in disciplining him for turning his back on his family?!¡± Mr. Brown added angrily, ¡°What will happen to Sonny if they divorce now? Sonny¡¯s our darling grandson!¡± That punch he gave his son was not out of me for Hank having had an affair, turning hist back on his family, and betraying his marriage. Instead, he was angry that his son had been so impatient and had not been considerate of his grandson. ¡°Sonny will definitely fall to me. That¡¯s my son! Liberty isn¡¯t capable of raising our son anyway. Dad, don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t let you lose your grandson. When the timees, if you guys don¡¯t want to live with me, I¡¯ll send Sonny over. You guys are raising Lucas anyway, so raising Sonny will be the same, and the cousins will have each other forpany. ¡°Once Sonny can start kindergarten, he can go with Lucas. Dad, Mom, set all of worries your down. Liberty definitely can¡¯t get custody of Sonny. ¡± Even if Liberty had a job now, she had only started working for a few days. She had not even gotten her first paycheck. How could she measure up to him? He had already asked someone to help him go to Lewis & Co. to find out what Liberty¡¯s position was and think of a way to get her colleagues on his side to help him punish her, by her making a mistake at work and getting fired. Although Serenity would help her sister, Serenity¡¯s earnings could not help Liberty fight for Sonny¡¯s custody. Hank was not concerned at all that Sonny¡¯s custody would end up in Liberty¡¯s hands. Even if he did not have the time nor the thoughtfulness to be involved in his son¡¯s care, he would much rather send him to his old home for his parents to raise than let Liberty take him Chapter 407 Chapter 407 Chapter 407 Hank¡¯s parents saw that their son was adamant about divorcing his wife. He had already done. all sorts of things with Jessica before getting caught by Liberty. With Liberty¡¯s character, there was no way she would just take that lying down. Olivia said, ¡°Hank, after you married Liberty, it was all you going to work and earning money. She had no ie at all. If you divorce her, you should ask her to pack her clothes and leave immediately after settling the divorce proceedings at the City Hall. ¡°Don¡¯t allow her to take anything else. ¡± Since the divorce was set in stone, they would attempt to reduce the losses brought about by it. ¡°Mom, you don¡¯t want me to let her take anything else? That¡¯s not possible. She¡¯ll only leave with nothing if she herself doesn¡¯t want anything. After we married, she didn¡¯t work, but my ie will be considered both our shared assets. The moment she initiates the divorce proceedings, I¡¯ll have to give her half. ¡°Although I¡¯ve been paying for the house and the loan after we got married with my ie, she has a right to it because my ie is considered a post¨Cmarriage asset. I can not give her the house, but I¡¯ll have topensate her with a sum of money. I¡¯ve done the calction and I don¡¯t have to give much. And she paid for the renovations, which she¡¯s told me before that if we divorce, I have to return the money used for renovations to her. ¡°The renovations together with home appliances cost about four hundred and twenty thousand bucks. That was all forked out by Liberty. But I¡¯ve told her before, I¡¯m not going to pay her back even a cent. She paid for it of her own volition. I didn¡¯t force her to do it, so I¡¯m not paying her back for that. ¡± Olivia immediately said, ¡°Why should you pay her back for the renovations? Just ignore her on that. No matter how she argues or makes a fuss, there¡¯s no need to pay her any mind. Hank, have you calcted your assets after you got married? If you really have to give her half, how much do you need to give her?¡± ¡°Around two hundred thousand bucks. ¡± ¡°Two hundred thousand?!¡± Olivia cried, ¡°No, Hank, you can¡¯t give her two hundred thousand bucks! She didn¡¯t earn a cent after she got married to you, so why should she take two hundred thousand bucks of your money? She can get two thousand only, whether she likes it or not!¡± Two hundred thousand? That was like cutting her flesh off of her body. Hank did not want to give Liberty any money either. It was just that, while initiating the divorce now, it would be too sudden for him to move his assets away. He could only negotiate for a divorce. If that did not work, they would have to go. to court. Mr. Brown said guardedly, ¡°You got caught cheating by Liberty. Will that work against you? For example, will she take away all your assets?¡± Hank said without shame, ¡°Dad, there are tons of men who¡¯ve had affairs. How many of them really lost all their assets? Liberty and I didn¡¯t sign a prenup before we got married, and the Chapter 407w doesn¡¯t say that the cheating party will absolutely lose all their assets. It¡¯s just those people who think that the cheating party should lose all their assets. ¡± So many men richer than he was had had affairs, but they had not lost all their assets now, had they? ¡°It¡¯s just because I cheated¡­ If Liberty files for the divorce proceedings, she¡¯s the innocent. party. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. I¡¯ll have to be more considerate of her when we split our assets. ¡± Olivia was confused. She only understood one thing¨Cwhen her son divorced, he would have to give Liberty some of his money. She was extremely unwilling to let this happen, especially when her son said that he would have to give Liberty more consideration when they split their assets. Was that not equivalent to her son giving Liberty even more money? ¡°Hank, why don¡¯t¡­ Why don¡¯t you forget about divorcing her? You see, you¡¯ll lose so much when you do! Go and admit you¡¯re wrong to Liberty, and tell her you won¡¯t do it anymore. Even if your rtionship can¡¯t be as good as it was, at least you¡¯d be able to stay married. ¡°She loves Sonny, so for Sonny¡¯s sake, she might not divorce you then. ¡± So many women, after marrying, ended up having husbands who had affairs but endured it because of their children. Olivia felt that Liberty too would endure it for Sonny. Chapter 408 Chapter 408 Chapter 408 ¡°Tell her that you won¡¯t go halves on everything anymore and give her a little more allowance in the future, so don¡¯t get divorced. You and Jessica should do your best not to let her see you two together. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. ¡± ¡°Mom, I want to divorce her!¡± Hank was insistent. ¡°Jessica has never been married before and she¡¯s dating me. I have to take. responsibility for her. I don¡¯t want Jessica to suffer any more grievances. ¡± Olivia said unkindly, ¡°Wasn¡¯t Liberty a beautiful maiden too before she married you? I don¡¯t see you taking responsibility for her to the end. And now you¡¯re making her suffer for another woman?¡± ¡°Mom, whose side are you on?¡± Olivia pursed her lips. Jessica was very good at buttering them up and making them like her, but Olivia felt that when it came down to it, Liberty was better at facing life than Jessica was. Liberty had gone through hardships and had tenacity. Jessica, on the other hand, was the youngest in her family, was coddled by her parents and her older brother, and had never gone through much hardship in her life. A woman like that would be with him through the thin, but not necessarily through the thick. ¡°I told Liberty that we should take these two days for us both to calm down. The day after tomorrow, I¡¯ll go talk to her about getting divorced. We¡¯ll discuss the terms first. If we can¡¯te to an agreement, she can sue me then! Either way, this marriage must end. I started. hating her a long time ago. ¡± Hank now seemed like he was possessed, insisting on getting divorced. Although he said he would give Liberty some money, that was but a fraction of his assets. The sum of money he had saved under his father¡¯s name¨Cnow that was the biggest portion of them. There were more than a million bucks there. Liberty had no clue about that, and even if she guessed of its existence, she had no proof and could not nail him for doing that. Hank¡¯s parents looked at each other. Finally, Mr. Brown said, ¡°Since you¡¯ve made your decision, your mother and I can¡¯t say anything either. Just make sure you apologize to Liberty properly and negotiate the terms of the divorce. Other than giving her a bit of money, don¡¯t give her anything else. And see if you can talk her down the sum of money a little. Is ten or twenty thousand alright? Two hundred thousand is just too much. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. She didn¡¯t even earn a cent after she got married, but she wants to take two hundred thousand with her when she leaves? She¡¯s basically hitting the jackpot. Just get married to a few more men, and get divorced a few more times. Wouldn¡¯t she be a rich woman then? Hank, you have to stand your ground. Give her twenty thousand bucks at most. ¡°You don¡¯t have to fight her over this, Mom will do it! I¡¯m already old and I¡¯m not afraid of being embarrassed. I¡¯ll fight her to the bitter end and I definitely won¡¯t let her take so much of your money. I don¡¯t believe she¡¯ll dare to hit back at me!! Olivia resolved to be an unreasonable, savage shrew of a mother¨Cinw and was determined. not to let Liberty take her son¡¯s two hundred thousand dors. ¡°Two hundred thousand could build you a two¨Cstory house in the countryside. Now, materials are costly. If this was back then, two hundred thousand could not only build you the house, it could pay for all the fixtures as well. ¡± Hank sighed. ¡°We¡¯ll see what terms Liberty puts forward when we discuss it the day after tomorrow. ¡± Olivia hummed, thought about it, and said, ¡°What about Sonny? Why don¡¯t we bring Sonny back here for now? I heard that when kids are too young, they¡¯ll generally award the rights to the mother, as long as the mother has the ability to support the kid. Sonny¡¯s only a little over two years old, and it¡¯s always been Liberty and her sister who¡¯s looked after him. The court. might really give Sonny¡¯s custody to Liberty. ¡± When the court made its decision, it would not take into consideration that Sonny was the only paternal grandson the Browns had¨Conly the child¡¯s best interest would be taken into. consideration. HATIMAE ¡°If the custody falls to you, and Sonnyes to stay with us, we¡¯ll be able to cultivate the bond. If the custody falls to Liberty and Sonny¡¯s here with us, we can just insist on not giving Sonny back. What can Liberty do then? Sonny is my grandson!¡± Mr. Brown also was more concerned about the issue of his grandson than other divorce matters. He said to his son, ¡°Hank, your mother¡¯s right. First, bring Sonny to stay with us as soon as possible. Your mother and I will take care of him for now. ¡± Chapter 409 Chapter 409 Chapter 409 Mr. Brown continued to say, ¡°It¡¯s fine even if you give a little more money to Liberty. We shouldn¡¯t be too unrelenting and should leave a way out for ourselves. Then we¡¯ll be able to meet amiably in the future, but Sonny must return to us!¡± Sonny was a Brown, after all! ¡°Dad, I guarantee you that I¡¯ll definitely get custody of Sonny. ¡± ¡°Before the two of you are divorced, I don¡¯t believe your guarantee. It¡¯s better if you get Sonny toe and stay with us and let your mother and I take care of him. I¡¯ll only stop worrying then. ¡± Hank said helplessly, ¡°Dad, you and Mom have never taken care of Sonny. If I bring him over, and he can¡¯t get used to it and makes a fuss, what then? Olivia rallied. ¡°That¡¯s exactly why we have to take him in now to nurture the bond. In the future, when you get married again, will that Yates woman be willing to take care of him? Sonny will definitely end up with your dad and I. We¡¯re his biological grandparents, after all. ¡± ¡°How many kind stepmothers are there out there? And anyway, you and that Yates woman are both still young. You¡¯ll very quickly have your own kid between the two of you. Sonny wasn¡¯t born by the Yates woman¨Cshe definitely won¡¯t treat Sonny well. ¡± Never having taken care of Sonny before was one thing but Hank¡¯s parents were still more concerned about their grandson being abused by his future stepmother. In recent years, there had been a lot of news about stepmothers abusing kids borne by the husband¡¯s previous wife. Some had only been a few years old when the stepmothers abused. them to death. Once there was a stepmother, there would be a stepchild. Who knew how their own child would treat Sonny in the future? Sonny was their first grandson. Hank¡¯s parents viewed him with great importance. ¡°Your father and I have some retirement funds, and we¡¯re not too old yet. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. As long as our bodies are healthy, we can still raise Sonny. In the future, you¡¯ll only need to pay for his living expenses and his school fees. ¡± Hank thought for a moment and said, ¡°Fine. I¡¯ll go home tonight and bring Sonny over tomorrow for you guys to take care of him. ¡± Hank¡¯s parents only then felt relieved when he agreed. Serenity and her sister knew early on that the Browns would put up a fight when it came to a divorce. Serenity slept for almost half the day at the shop to recover her mental strength. It was already past eleven when she woke up. Seeing Jasmine y with Sonny and Sonnyughing uncontrobly, Serenity felt a little sad in her heart. Once her sister were to go through with the divorce, Sonny would no longer have aplete family. Divorce, no matter who it came to, whether adult or child, was a form of harm. 1/2 ¡°You¡¯re up,¡± Jasmine said as she smiled. ¡°If you¡¯re still sleepy, you can sleep for a little while longer. Once Mrs. Lane¡¯s done making lunch, I¡¯ll wake you up to eat. ¡± ¡°I feel much better already after sleeping for half a day. ¡± Sonny walked over. ¡°Ant Swer. ¡± Serenity picked him up, and he asked, ¡°Ant Swer, are you sick? Why are you always sleeping?¡± He even mimicked the way his mother normally felt his forehead and touched Serenity¡¯s forehead. He then touched his own forehead but did not know what to say. This action of his made Serenityugh and hug him tightly. Once Serenity loosened her grip, she said while smiling, ¡°I¡¯m not sick. I didn¡¯t sleep wellst night, so I¡¯m making up for it now. That¡¯s why I was sleeping so much. ¡± ¡°Why didn¡¯t you sleep wellst night?¡± Sonny felt that once he climbed onto the bed, as long his mother was by his side, he could sleep extremely well. Was Ant Swer unable to sleep well because she did not have her mother by her side? He had never seen Ant Swer¡¯s mother before. His mother said Ant Swer¡¯s mother was his maternal grandmother. ¡°Because I was thinking of how to make money, make lots of money and be a rich woman! That¡¯s why I didn¡¯t sleep well. ¡± Sonny blinked, and wanted to reply, but was kind of stumped on what he should say. The torn look on his face was incredibly hrious to witness. ¡°Has Sonny eaten?¡± Sonny rubbed his tummy and replied, ¡°Jazz fed me! Sonny¡¯s full. ¡± Serenityughed and put him down. ¡°Then Sonny can keep ying. I need to make a call. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± The little kid obediently walked back to Jasmine and let Jasmine y with him. Serenity ced a call to Zachary. Chapter 410 Chapter 410 Chapter 410 Zachary instantaneously picked up her call. ¡°Mr. York, were you alright this morning? Can you hold up? If not, you should get the remaining day off toe back and rest after your meeting. ¡± Hearing her concern, Zachary felt happy. He leaned back on the ck swiveling chair. He said as he spun, ¡°I only managed to hold up because I had a cup of coffee after I got back to the office. Work is almost over. I can sleep for a bit soon. ¡± ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to eat?¡± ¡°I¡¯m too sleepy and I don¡¯t have an appetite. I don¡¯t feel like it. ¡± ¡°That won¡¯t do. You¡¯ve worked the whole morning. If you don¡¯t eat lunch, you¡¯ll get gastric probleMs. It¡¯ll be very hard to recover fully afterward. ¡± Zachary said softly, ¡°I just don¡¯t feel like eating. ¡± ¡°After you finish work, you should get some sleep first. I¡¯ll send some food over to you in a bit. I¡¯ll call you once I¡¯ve reached your office. ¡± He only lost his sleep because of her sister¡¯s issue. Whether it was for their public image, or in private, Serenity could not just let Zachary skip lunch. ¡°Alright then. I¡¯ll sleep in the office for a while. Give me a call when you reach. Be careful when. you drive. ¡± ¡°I slept for half the day in the shop, so I¡¯m in good spirits. It¡¯s fine. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. You should go and do your thing. Once you¡¯re done, hurry up and get some sleep. ¡± After she finished saying that, Serenity hung up. She then got up to enter the kitchen and took out an insted lunch box. As she washed it, she said to Mrs. Lane, ¡°Mrs. Lane, Mr. York isn¡¯ting back to eat, so I¡¯m sending some food. over. You guys should go ahead and eat first. Just keep some for me and I¡¯lle back and eat. them. ¡± Mrs. Lane hurriedly said, ¡°The food¡¯s already done. They can eat once your sisteres over. Why don¡¯t you eat first? If you only eat when you get back, it¡¯ll probably be past one o¡¯clock by then. You¡¯ll get gastric issues that way. ¡± Serenity thought for a moment. That was true, so she let Mrs. Lane filled up the box with pasta and some side dishes. Mrs. Lane even packed some soup for him. In the end, the insted. lunch box was packed to the brim. Serenity speedily drank a bowl of soup and shoveled a bowl of pasta down, hardly touching the side dishes. Filling her stomach in just a few moments, she picked up the insted lunch box and said to Mrs. Lane, ¡°I¡¯m going to send the food over first, Mrs. Lane. When it gets busyter, please look after Sonny. ¡± The students were all pretty respectful and did not need much supervision. All Jasmine had to do was mind the cash register. ¡°I will. You should hurry and send the food over to Mr. York. ¡® Mrs. Lane was worried that Zachary would be hungry. She urged Serenity to hurry on over and give him the food. After he ended his call with his wife while still in the office, Zachary delightedly sent Josh at text. Zachary: [You go ahead by yourself to eat at the hotelter. I¡¯m not going anymore. ] Josh: [You¡¯re going to Mrs. York¡¯s shop to eat again?] Zachary: [I¡¯m too sleepy, so I¡¯m going to have a nap to recover some sleep first. My wife¡¯s worried about me so she¡¯s sending some food over herself. ] Josh did not feel like replying anymore. He felt like a handful of a public disy of affection had just been shoved into his face. He seriously suspected that Zachary was deliberately bragging about a husband and wife¡¯s affection to provoke him into looking forward to his own marriage and his date with Jasmine even more. Then, Zachary would have bragging rights as the matchmaker. Knock knock! There was a knock on the door. This interrupted Zachary who wanted to continue showing off the affection between him and his wife. The person outside did not wait for his reply before pushing the door open and walked in. It was Nana. ¡°Nana, why are you here?¡± Precisely at this time too. Serenity would be reaching soon too. Did Nana speed here just to be a third wheel? She did not just bring herself, she brought a luggage bag with her too. Zachary saw Nana dragging in that luggage and his face turned an unsightly shade. His brows furrowed and he asked, ¡°Nana, what are you doing?¡± Chapter 411 Chapter 411 Chapter 411 Nana dragged her luggage and walked straight to the sofa. She sat down and said, ¡°Zachary, I want to move in with you and Seren. ¡± Zachary¡¯s face stiffened. ¡°Nana, you promised me ¡°I¡¯m not stirring trouble, so what are you so nervous for? What are you worried about?¡± Nana rebutted. Following that, she said stubbornly, ¡°I¡¯ve already been chased out of home by your dad and uncles. I have nowhere else to go, so I wanted to seek refuge with my grandson. Is that not okay? Are you going to learn from your dad and uncles and chase me out too?¡± Nana sighed. ¡°When you get old, you get hated. Wherever I go, I get chased away. What¡¯s the point of raising sons? What¡¯s the point of raising grandsons too? It¡¯s better to raise a sweet granddaughter. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was dark. ¡°Nana, my dad and uncles would never chase you away. ¡± Even if she wanted to move in with him, she should not tag his dad and uncles with a giantbel of being unfilial. Nana smiled cheerily. ¡°I can¡¯t say it was my daughters¨Cinw that chased me away now, can I? I gave birth to my sons, so no matter how I discredit them, they won¡¯t take it to heart. I didn¡¯t give birth to my daughters¨Cinw, so how could I discredit them?¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Anyway, I¡¯ve heard all about it. ¡± Zachary asked a little uneasily, ¡°And what have you heard all about, Nana?¡± ¡°I heard your sister¨Cin¨C law is going to get divorced. Her crisis is your chance to prove yourself. As long as you help your sister¨Cinw solve the problem, Serenity¡¯s favorability toward you will continue to rise. Then, I¡¯ll be able to carry my great¨Cgranddaughter in my arms! ¡°I missed out on so many good shows, so no matter what you say, I can¡¯t miss out on this one. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. So I¡¯m moving in with you two! If you don¡¯t let me do that, I¡¯ll go tell Serenity that you¡¯re being unfilial and that you don¡¯t want to take me in even when I have nowhere else to go. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was as dark as it could get. ¡°Nana, can you be reasonable?¡± ¡°I have no reason to speak of that with you. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°I¡¯ve even brought my luggage over already. If you don¡¯t let me move in, I¡¯ll roll out a rug at the entrance of your ce. If Serenity thinks you¡¯re unfilial and wants to stop liking you, you can¡¯t me me then, ¡®kay? ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t give your secret away. You¡¯ve been hiding your identity and lying to Serenity for so long now. The longer you do so, and once it gets out, the angrier she¡¯ll be. I¡¯m filled with more joy as I look on. I can¡¯t wait to see how you¡¯ll salvage the situation then! ? ??? Haha!¡± Zachary kept a tight lid on his anger. This was his nana! His nana! He had to endure it. He could not let his temper re, at all costs! ¡°Fine, fine, fine. If you want to move in, then you can move in. ¡± Facing his own nana, Zachary could only raise the white g in surrender. ¡°Nana, you must not have eaten yet, right? There are only five minutes left until work ends. You should hurry and get Callum to take you out to eat. ¡± Nana asked him, ¡°Why, aren¡¯t you eating? Or are you going to Serenity¡¯s shop to eat? Can I follow you?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you want to meet your great¨Cgranddaughter as soon as possible? If you¡¯re constantly following me to third¨Cwheel us, you won¡¯t be able to meet her even in a few years¡® time. ¡± ¡°Wow, you¡¯ve seen the light! Did the sun rise from the west? Or have I started hallucinating in my old age and heard wrongly?¡± Nana took her phone out and said to Zachary, ¡°Zack, say that again a little louder so I can record that. When I¡¯m bored, I¡¯ll y it back to make sure I didn¡¯t hear it wrongly. ¡± Zachary was speechless. Nana then nced twice at her grandson¡¯s legs, and asked, ¡°Do your legs hurt?¡± Zachary did not respond, his expression sullen. ¡°It was only a few days I hadn¡¯t seen you, Zack, but why do I feel like your face has swollen? Who punched you?¡± Zachary continued to remain silent with that dark expression on his face. Chapter 412 Chapter 412 Chapter 412 ¡°Who was the one who said ¡®I don¡¯t get jealous, it¡¯s unbing!¡® and ¡®I don¡¯t chase after women!¡°? Zack, do you know who said that?¡± Zachary¡¯s face did not twitch from its glum expression. His lips were pursed tightly as he kept quiet. Nanaughed until she was content, and only then changed the subject. ¡°Isn¡¯t Elisa Stone waiting for you there?¡± ¡°She won¡¯te and disturb me anymore. ¡± Elisa had note to the office to lie in wait for him for the past two days. She had once told Serenity that as long as Zachary already had a girlfriend or was married, she would definitely stop bothering him. That made Zachary¡¯s impression of her increase in favorability by two points. The unruly youngdy was indeed much better than many others just by not trying to break apart a marriage in the pursuit of true love. ¡°Has she found out about you and Serenity?¡± ¡°Nope. I just showed my left hand off, and she backed off. ¡± Nana harrumphed. ¡°What do you think your left hand is? If she backed off just after you showed off your left hand, what exactly did you do?¡± Zachary silently took out the gold ring he kept with himself at all times, put it on his left hand¡¯s ring finger, and waved it at Nana. Nana was speechless. ¡°Nana, I¡¯ll get Callum to take you to lunch, and take your luggage with you. Once you¡¯re done eating, get Callum to drop you off at Serenity¡¯s shop. ¡± Just as Nana was about to reply, Zachary added, ¡°Nana, Callum¡¯s not young anymore too. Stop scrutinizing me only. No matter how you see it, I¡¯m married. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. I have a wife. Callum¡¯s still single, so shouldn¡¯t you shift your target? Just so Callum can¡¯t keep saying you have a favorite. ¡± Nana pursed¨Cher lips. ¡°That¡¯s because I don¡¯t have a suitable candidate in mind! Once I find some, not a single one of those cousins of yours will be able to escape. ¡°You don¡¯t have to call Callum to your office, I¡¯ll go find him myself,¡± Nana added as she stood up and left, dragging her luggage away. Zachary still notified Callum regardless to get Callum to pick up Nana. When Callum saw Nana dragging her luggage bag behind her, he was stunned for a moment. and asked in confusion, ¡°Nana, what are you doing? Are you going on holiday?¡± ¡°I want to move in with your cousin and his wife. ¡± Callum was not an idiot and understood the situation in an instant. Heughed and said, ¡± Nana, can you ask him if I can move in with him too?¡± Chapter 412 ¡°His ce is so small. How could it fit you too?¡± ¡°I can sleep on the sofa or something. If that doesn¡¯t fly, I can just roll out a rug. You can just tell him that if I see him and Serenity being affectionate every day, I¡¯ll be easily influenced and want to end my singlehood. My parents would be extremely thankful to him if he lets me move in. ¡± He was still single and his parents were extremely anxious at this point. Nana chuckled and said, ¡°If you want to say that, you can tell him yourself. I¡¯m not going to be your messenger. Do you think it was easy for me to get him to let me move in? I had to go in with a thick skin and sling some false usations at your dad and uncles¡® way before I managed to get my way in. ¡°If I tried to help you, I¡¯d lose even my own chance to move in. What a loss that would be!¡± After having missed out on so many good scenes, for the second half of the show, no matter what, she could not miss them out any more. Especially since that cheeky boy Zachary had finally started to make his move on Serenity. If she did not keep an eye on them, and the two of them had an argument and started a cold war with each other again, they would have to go back to the drawing board. When would she be able to meet her great¨Cgranddaughter then? Callum asked in curiosity, ¡°Nana, what sort of false usations did you use my dad and the rest of? Should I do the same?¡± Nana smacked him with a huff. ¡°Wait until you be a grandfather, then we¡¯ll talk. You don¡¯t even have a girlfriend right now, so you can¡¯t. ¡± Callum rubbed the part where his Nana had smacked him. He was so incredibly curious. What did Nana use them of that he would have to wait until he was a grandfather to do the same?¡± Chapter 413 Chapter 413 Chapter 413 Callum brought Nana downstairs and the two prepared to go to the hotel to have lunch. The moment they exited the office building, Callum spotted Serenity with his sharp eyes. ¡°Nana, now I understand why Zachary asked me to bring you out for lunch. ¡± He pointed at the entrance of the office building and said to Nana, ¡°Serenity¡¯s here and she¡¯s even carrying an insted lunch box. She brought him lunch. ¡± No wonder Zachary was burning with anxiety about getting him to take Nana and leave. He did not want Nana to third¨Cwheel them. Nana stopped in her tracks and squinted for a while, saying, ¡°That really is Seren. Hurry and give your cousin a call and remind him to change rooMs. Let him use yours, and don¡¯t let Seren find out. ¡± Callum hummed in acquiescence and called Zachary. Even without Callum¡¯s heads¨Cup, Zachary knew long ago that Serenity had arrived. There was a pair of binocrs in his drawer. Once he had sent Nana on her way, he had gone to stand by the window, staring downwards with his binocrs. When he saw Serenity¡¯s car, he put the binocrs back in their original ce and hurriedly went downstairs. Callum drove out of the building with Nana. He stopped at the entrance to the office and wound down the window to say hi to Serenity. ¡°Nana, Callum. ¡± Serenity smiled as she walked over and asked, ¡°Nana, why are you here?¡± Nana pulled a long face on purpose and said, ¡°Long story, Seren. I¡¯m going to have lunch first. I¡¯m so hungry! I¡¯ll talk to you tonight. ¡± ¡°What happened? Okay, Nana, go have your lunch first. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. ¡± ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m taking Nana out for lunch. Zachary¡¯s still in his office. You can give him a call. and he¡¯lle out to get you. ¡± Once Callum finished saying that, he drove away with Nana. After they had driven for some distance, heughed and said, ¡°Luckily, I¡¯ve been driving this car to work every day for fear that someday Serenity woulde to the office and see that I¡¯m driving a luxury car. If her suspicion started from me, Zachary would skin me alive. ¡± ¡°I think that fa?ade of his will be burnt away soon,¡± Nana said. ¡°We¡¯ll see how he tries to salvage the situation then. Callum, you¡¯d better not learn from him. ¡± ¡°I think it¡¯s pretty fun. You¡¯ll only know if the other person likes you as a person or your identity and status if you hide your identity. ¡± Nana could not say a word in reply. The circumstances of their family did indeed make itmon to encounter people who only wanted them for their identity and status. After seeing Nana and Callum drive off into the distance, Serenity was about to call Zachary when Zachary exited the building. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± Serenity walked forward to greet him, carrying the insted lunch box. Zachary had been busy the whole morning and had relied on two cups of coffee to make it through the morning. He felt lethargic, but the moment he saw Serenity walk toward him with a smile on her face, he suddenly felt as if it was worth it no matter how hard he worked or how tired he got. ¡°You¡¯re done with work, right?¡°¡± Zachary nodded. ¡°Just only. ¡± Serenity saw a lot of people leaving the office building. There were so many people, it wasparable to the crowds that thronged bus stations during summer holidays. These were all the elites of the industry. Serenity had never worked in apany before, so she felt a little envious seeing all these elites wear uniformly professional suits that made them look smart andpetent. Of course, she still much preferred her current job where she could be at ease. ¡°The food is all freshly cooked. You should eat it while it¡¯s still hot. ¡± Serenity passed the insted lunch box to Zachary. ¡°Are you going to take it back to your office to eat or eat it in my car?¡± Zachary reached out to take the lunch box and at the same time, looked at her. ¡°I don¡¯t have an appetite when I eat alone. ¡± Chapter 414 Chapter 414 Chapter 414 ¡°I¡¯ve already eaten. ¡± Serenity answered without hesitation, then thought for a second before saying, ¡°Why don¡¯t I apany you as you eat? Once you¡¯re done eating, I¡¯ll go back. ¡± A light sparked in Zachary¡¯s eyes. ¡°Let¡¯s go to my office then. ¡± Serenity nced once more at the crowd of people in ck and tentatively asked, ¡°I¡¯m not an employee of yourpany. Can I enter just like that?¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine since I¡¯m bringing you in. ¡± He reached his hand out to Serenity, and after a moment of hesitation, she put her hand in his. As he held her hand, a hint of a smile appeared on Zachary¡¯s face that escaped Serenity¡¯s notice. With one hand carrying the insted lunch box Serenity had personally sent over and the other holding her hand, he led Serenity into the building under everyone¡¯s astonished and spective gazes. ¡°Mr. York. ¡± ¡°Mr. York. ¡± Everyone who saw Zachary would greet him respectfully. They would also smile and nod at Serenity but they greeted her bearing a sense of wonder and spection of her identity. Someone who could be led in by the hand by the Mr. York definitely had to be the liked. person he Speaking of which, when did he get a girlfriend? His ability to keep a secret was amazing. If they had not seen it by chance today, they would not even dare believe that even Mr. York could have a girlfriend. No wonder Ms. Stone had stoppeding by to lie in wait for Mr. York as she must have found out that Mr. York had at partner already. Although Ms. Stone was a little headstrong and unruly, she was from a rich family, after all. She had her pride. It was normal to not want to fight someone just for a man. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Someone wanted to secretly take a photo of Zachary holding Serenity¡¯s hand with their smartphone but was stopped by the person beside them. ¡°Do you want to die? You dare sneak a shot of Mr. York?¡± That person was a little confused. ¡°I¡¯m not taking a photo of their faces, just their backs. Our Mr. York¡¯s love life has finally made some progress. This is big news! I can¡¯t help myself. I want to share this on my social media. ¡± ¡°You can¡¯t even take photos of their backs. Before Mr. York publicly announces his rtionship, we can¡¯t take any photos of him, and we can¡¯t tell any outsiders about this either. ¡± That person thought about it and in the next moment, their face paled. They hurriedly shoved their smartphone back into their pockets and thanked the person who stopped them from secretly taking the photo. All of them knew what Mr. York was capable of. If they offended him, their career would be prematurely ended. One was not to assume that Mr. York would not find out if they had secretly taken photos of him. Mr. Bucham, who was constantly by Mr. York¡¯s side, was also known as his chief of intelligence and incredibly capable. The only things Mr. York did not know about were the things he did not want to. Serenity was in the dark to all that was happening around her. As she was led into the office building by Zachary, she was shocked by the atmosphere of York Corporation¡¯s office building. CC When Zachary brought her into his office, she noticed the que on his office door read Chief Operating Officer¡± and only then learned what Zachary¡¯s position in York Corporation was. Once the office door closed, she said to Zachary, ¡°You said you have a regr job here in thepany and you rarely have the chance to even meet the boss, but when I came in earlier I saw that it was written ¡°Chief Operating Officer¡± on the door. You¡¯re being a little too low¨Ckey and modest. ¡± ¡°This isn¡¯t my office,¡± Zachary lied with no qualMs. His face did not turn red nor did his breath hitch. He walked to the sofa in the reception area and sat down. Once Serenity followed him over, he exined, ¡°This is my superior¡¯s office. Therge area with all the cubicles we passed by earlier is where I sit. Didn¡¯t youe to send me lunch? I was worried you¡¯d feel uneasy under everyone¡¯s eyes, so I asked my superior to lend me his office for a bit. ¡® His words bore half truth and half lie. It was true that this was not his office whereas Callum York being his superior was a lie. Serenity believed him and sat down opposite him, smiling as she said, ¡°Why would I be uneasy? They can look if they want. I¡¯m still pretty confident in my looks. ¡°All of them address you Mr. York with utmost respect. ¡± Chapter 415 Chapter 415 Chapter 415 Zachary opened the lid of the insted lunch box as he said, ¡°If you join mypany and work here, you¡¯ll realize that everyone addresses each other this way regardless of position. Ourpany culture ces respect as a priority. Anyway, I¡¯m just an average existence here. ¡± Serenity stuck her tongue out at him. ¡°Luckily, I don¡¯t have the capability to join yourpany and work here, or else there¡¯d be too many names to remember. ¡± Zachary looked at her meaningfully. ¡°You¡¯re in a pretty good position right now. You have freedom, and you earn quite a bit too. You don¡¯t know how many people would envy a self employed person with freedom like you. ¡± ¡°I couldn¡¯t get used to being managed by someone, so I opened my shop with Jasmine right after graduation. Jasmine¡¯s family helped a lot, or else we wouldn¡¯t have been able to get the operating rights to our shop. ¡± It was not easy to open a shop right at the entrance of a school. ¡°Was that copper wire tree bought from my online shop?¡± Serenity saw there was a copper wire tree ced on Callum York¡¯s desk. Zachary hummed in admission. He really did not like looking at Callum¡¯s copper wire tree, because he got it without spending a single cent. ¡°Didn¡¯t you notice when we passed by the cubicle area earlier? There¡¯s either a copper wire tree, money tree or maneki¨Cneko on everyone¡¯s desk. Whichever it is, they were all bought from your online store. ¡± Serenity suddenly felt a sense of achievement and said as sheughed, ¡°It¡¯s all thanks to you. and Callum for giving the rmendations. Elisa also contributed a lot. She not only rmended me to her friends, but she also asked her brother to buy my handicrafts and put them in his office, saying that would help promote my business. ¡°Now, the earnings from my online shop are higher than the earnings from my bookshop. ¡± When you had lots of friends, your path would be easier. The path would be even easier to walk especially if your friends were as helpful as Elisa Stone was. Zachary was lost for words. His wife¡¯s craftwork was even disyed in his rival¡¯s office. Even he had not sessfully made inroads into the Stone Group yet. His wife was even more capable than he was and had already attacked Stone Group first. Hmm, not bad! As expected of his¨CZachary York¡¯s wife! She was aggressive like he was. If Serenity knew what he was thinking at that moment, she would definitely say he was blowing his own trumpet. Thinking it was Zachary¡¯s superior¡¯s office, Serenity only dared look around the office twice and did not wander. Afterward, her gaze returned to Zachary and she smiled happily as she watched him eat, asking him from time to time, ¡°Is it delicious?¡± 12 Chapter 415 ¡°Mrs. Lane¡¯s cooking is pretty good, but I prefer your home cooking. It¡¯s very vorful. ¡± ¡°I think Mrs. Lane¡¯s cooking tastes better than mine though. ¡± Zachary looked at her meaningfully, although it was unclear what he meant by it. . Serenity¡¯s heart inexplicably started beating faster. What was happening? In the past, when he stared at her with those dark eyes of his, her face would not turn red, nor would her heart get flustered, or get scared. Now, when he stared at her, her heart would beat faster. She wanted to escape it, but could not bring herself to. It was a pretty contradictory mentality. ¡°You really couldn¡¯t get the afternoon off to rest?¡± ¡°Not this afternoon. I¡¯ll ask for a day off tomorrow. It¡¯ll be the weekend in two days, so I¡¯ll have three days of rest in total. ¡± Serenity was confused. ¡°You¡¯re not asking for the day off today, but you¡¯re asking for tomorrow?¡± ¡°The work due today is all really important, so I have to make sure it¡¯s handled properly. As for tomorrow, there isn¡¯t anything important due, so if I ask for the day off to rest, no one will say anything. ¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Serenity said nkly. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Oh, right. I saw Callum and Nana earlier and Nana looked really unhappy. What happened?¡± Zachary said as he munched, ¡°She got into an argument with my dad. In her anger, Nana ran away from home and came to the office with her luggage bag to vent to Callum and I. Tonight, Nana¡¯sing to stay with us. ¡± ¡°Why did they argue?¡± Serenity asked in concern. She remembered that her father¨Cinw was very obedient toward Nana. ¡°I don¡¯t know either. When I asked Nana, she wouldn¡¯t tell me, and when I called my dad to ask him, he wouldn¡¯t say a thing either. ¡± ¡°Let¡¯s not ask then. If Nana wants to stay with us, let her stay a little longer. You¡¯re not working tomorrow so it¡¯s perfect timing. You can take Nana shopping to cheer her up. ¡± Chapter 416 Chapter 416 Chapter 416 ¡°It won¡¯t make Nana any happier if it¡¯s just her and me. Nana moans that I¡¯m not much of a talker. She prefers you. ¡± Serenity nonchntly said, ¡°We can take Nana for a vacation together. ¡± Having gotten what he wanted, Zachary responded, ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°There¡¯s a resort in the western suburb. I¡¯ll take you and Nana there tomorrow for some fresh air,¡± he added. Liberty and Hank would begin the divorce proceedings the day after tomorrow, so as Liberty¡¯s side of the family, they must be there to have her back. Hence why Zachary only had a day to have a date with his wife. The resort was one of the Yorks¡® many estates, but it was a profit¨Cmaking business that was open to the public. There was always a high influx of vacationers, there for a getaway every year. ¡°I heard the ce is beautiful and fun. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ve never been there. I wonder what it¡¯s like. ¡± Serenity whipped out her phone to search for pictures of the resort. After looking at the pictures, she began to look forward to tomorrow. Mr. York, who apparently had no appetite to eat alone, gobbled up Serenity¡¯s packed lunch in mere minutes. He wanted to wash the food container when Serenity stopped him. ¡°I¡¯ll do it. You¡¯ve been working all morning. Get some rest. Your boss¡® office is cozy. Lie down for a bit on his sofa. It¡¯s better than crouching over your desk. ¡± Her thoughtfulness gave Zachary warm tingles. Feeling tired, Zachary slumped against the sofa and fell asleep while Serenity cleaned the lunchbox. Serenity returned to find Zachary asleep. Treading softly, she made her way toward him and quietly studied his sleeping face. The attractive man was still a heartthrob even when he was asleep. Serenity put down the lunchbox and sat next to him to watch him sleep. This man was haughty and callous, refusing to waste his breath on her when they first signed away their single lives. Zachary somehow started acting nice to her and sharing conversations as time went by. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. Trust slowly built between them. It was said that spending time together was the recipe for bonding. Serenity believed in that. She and Zachary might not have a super affectionate rtionship, but things were a lot better than when they first started off. At least now, he would care for her while she would show him concern. Since he was in dreand, Serenity extended her arm to caress his face while mumbling under her breath, ¡°I remember the first time I touched your face. Your reaction as if I was a pervert was to die for. Now I can feel you up however I want. Teehee. ¡± By the chuckle, she appeared pretty smug. Zachary would challenge Serenity to slide her hand a little more downward if she had the balls. However, that was only if he was conscious. Serenity¡¯s retort would probably be that she had no balls since she was a girl. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Serenity leaned forward against. his ear, breathing a murmur, ¡°We¡¯re getting along just fine now. How about we consider being like this forever and not go down the divorce route?¡± s, Zachary was too far off in slumbend to hear her. Otherwise, he would be over the moon. Had he known she had these thoughts, Zachary would not have sneaked around and stolen the contract to get rid of the evidence. ¡°I¡¯ll leave it until the end of the contract term. ¡± Serenity believed they had not spent enough time to make a lifelongmitment to each other. The written contract¡­ It dawned on Serenity where she ced the document¡­. The contract made no difference to Serenity as it was a marriage of convenience from the start. Thus, she did not put away the paperwork. If she remembered correctly, Serenity left it on her dressing table. Chapter 417 Chapter 417 Chapter 417 Nevertheless, the piece of paper was not on her dressing table anymore. She seemed¡­ to have drawn something on the back of the contract¡­ Yikes! Serenity red at the sleeping man. Zachary did not just unwittingly destroy her drawing but also the agreement between them. No, hers may be gone, but the contract in his hand must be locked away somewhere safe. Zachary was unresponsive when Serenity poked him in the face, so she jabbed him again and said, ¡°It¡¯s unfair that you identally destroyed mine while you still have yours. It puts me in a precarious situation. ¡± Maybe she should steal his contract and get rid of it. It would put them on a level ying field. No one had the contract to restrict anyone. Serenity would feel much more at ease. The thought that she did not have ess to his bedroom was a hurdle though. How could she steal the contract to destroy it? Should she get him drunk? Knock him unconscious? Or seduce him? Serenity ran through many scenarios in her mind, but the ideas came up short. She should wait for an opportunity to arise. She thought she would have to wait a long time before she had the chance to sneak into Zachary¡¯s room, but to her surprise, the opportunity fell right on herp that night. Nana dropped in unexpectedly. Grandma May had dinner with Callum at the hotel and stayed there to rest a bit before heading to Serenity¡¯s shop. She then called Callum to pick her up past nine o¡¯clock to drive her to Brynfield. The olddy dragged her luggage and stood outside Zachary¡¯s door at ten o¡¯clock. She doorbell. ¡°Who is it? Coming. ¡± Mrs. Lane uttered as she headed over to open the door. Seeing that it was the olddy on the other side, Mrs. Lane was shocked. ¡°Old Mrs. York, what brings you here?¡± ¡°Are Zachary and Serenity around?¡± ¡°They¡¯re not back yet but on their way home. I was the first one home. ¡± Liberty would pick Sonny up after work every evening, so Mrs. Lane did not have to stay at the shop. rang the Mrs. Lane helped Grandma May with the luggage as they entered the house. ¡°Old Mrs. York, what¡¯s this?¡± ¡°I¡¯m staying here from now on. Cecilia, don¡¯t address me formally when Serenity is around. How did Zack introduce you to Serenity?¡± Mrs. Lane closed the door and answered as she brought the olddy into the house, ¡°Mr. Zachary said I was Rowan¡¯s nanny. ¡± ¡°We can be old friends. Just watch what you call me. ¡± Mrs. Lane replied with a smile, ¡°I will. ¡± ¡°Please sit, Old Mrs. York. I¡¯ll pour you a ss of water. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Instead of sitting down, Grandma May wandered around the house and stopped before Zachary¡¯s room. She turned the doorknob to find the door was locked. She murmured something to herself, but Mrs. Lane could not catch it. Making her way back to the sofa, Grandma May asked, ¡°Are they still sleeping in separate rooms?¡± ¡°Yes. Mr. Zachary¡¯s room is always locked in case the missus sneaks in. ¡± ¡°That b*stard!¡± Grandma May cussed. It was no wonder Serenity said she could not even jump him and strip him naked if she tried. No one could with that stuck¨Cup attitude of his. ¡°Old Mrs. York, Mr. Zachary and the missus will be closer than ever if you do something about it. Based on my observations for the past two days, they seemed to have feelings for each other, but they¡¯re still not that into each other. The missus seems a little scared and oblivious to Mr. Zachary¡¯s advances. Maybe she¡¯s feeling insecure. ¡± ¡°Zachary¡¯s not doing good enough if he doesn¡¯t make Seren feel safe. ¡± The olddy sighed. ¡°It takes time for the b*stard to warm up to anybody, so he¡¯s making quite good progress now. I thought it¡¯d take him a year or so before he gets it. He¡¯s got me constantly worried. ¡± Grandma May had a great life. Her marriage was beautiful when her husband was still around. Now that she was old, Grandma May was blessed with respectful children and grandchildren all around. Her grandsons were raised well. Her only concern was their marriages. Chapter 418 Chapter 418 Chapter 418 Forget the eight younger brothers and cousins after Zachary, Zachary himself was a source of Grandma May¡¯s distress. Grandma May¡¯s husband once broke down to her about the grandsons¡® characters. He said Zachary would be the world¡¯s greatest grandson to Grandma May, but also the one she could not take her mind off. Grandma May¡¯s husband even predicted that with Zachary¡¯s personality, the boy would be single all his life if Grandma May did not meddle in his marriage. Now it appeared her old man was right on the money. ¡°Old Mrs. York, you can¡¯t rush rtionships. Marriage is a lifelong milestone. Serenity doesn¡¯t want to end up with the wrong man like Liberty. Although divorce ismon nowadays, it¡¯s a high price to pay to waste all the years in a rtionship for nothing. ¡± The sound of the door unlocking was heard. ¡°Mr. Zachary and the missus are back. ¡± The olddy reminded Mrs. Lane, ¡°Be careful how you address me. ¡® Mrs. Lane nodded her head. Zachary and Serenity walked into the house to Mrs. Lane watching TV with Grandma May. ¡°Mr. York, Ms. Serenity, you¡¯re back. ¡± Mrs. Lane got up and said with a smile, ¡°Mr. York, your grandmother is here. ¡± ¡°Nana. ¡± Serenity drew close. ¡°Nana, you came here on your own. I was just telling Zachary I didn¡¯t see you at the shop. ¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t want to bother you at the shop, so I had Callum drive me here. ¡± Out of the members of the York family, the olddy was whom Serenity was most familiar with. The pair were like actual grandmother and granddaughter and could talk for days. Zachary was jealous, to say the least. He and Serenity had nothing much to talk about when they were together. Was Nana moving in to take Serenity¡¯s attention from him? ¡°Oh, shoot!¡± Struck by a thought, Serenity smacked Zachary¡¯sp and uttered, ¡°Zachary, we only have three rooms with beds. Where is Nana sleeping tonight?¡± She should have bought an extra bed to put in another guest room when she shopped for bedding with Mrs. Lane. They had got nothing ready now that Nana was here. Zachary looked at her hand that attacked his thigh before turning his attention to Nana. N He told Nana to head to Serenity¡¯s shop after lunch, but the olddy went straight to Brynfield instead. It would bete by the time Zachary and Serenity returned from work. Since the guest room was not ready, Nana would have to sleep with Serenity. Knowing Nana, Zachary bet Nana would ¡°kick¡± Serenity out of her room. He knew that the number one thing on Nana¡¯s wish list after moving in was to get him and Serenity to share a bed. Grandma May remarked, ¡°I¡¯ll sleep with you, Seren. ¡± ¡°Okay. So long as you don¡¯t mind. ¡± The olddy grinned. ¡°Sorry you have to put up with me. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t say that. I don¡¯t put up with you. Nana, I¡¯ll take your suitcase into my room. ¡± Serenity got up and pulled Grandma May¡¯s suitcase into her room. ¡± Rising to her feet toe with, Grandma May even shot her grandson an angry look.This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Zachary got the hint. Zachary remained quiet as his facial muscles stiffened. Grandma May went into the bedroom and stayed there. Zachary sat for a while before getting up to retreat to his bedroom. Mrs. Lane was thest to leave for bed. She went into her room and locked the door behind her so that the missus would not be able to get into her bed in the middle of the night. Zachary, on the other hand, locked his bedroom door and took a few steps before stopping. After debating to himself with furrowed brows, Zachary turned around and unlocked the door Chapter 419 Chapter 419 Chapter 419 Back in Serenity¡¯s room, Serenity was unpacking for Grandma May. The olddy even brought along her mug for drinking water. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Did something happen, Nana? Why did you move out of your ce?¡± ¡°Sigh. Let¡¯s not go there. My children and grandchildren put me under stress. It¡¯s a thankless job just worrying about them. I¡¯m going to leave them alone and stay with you for a while. At least, they¡¯ll be out of my hair. ¡± Serenity put away Grandma May¡¯s things before going into the bathroom to draw her a bath. ¡± Nana, I ran the bath for you. You can have a nice hot bath. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± The olddy quickly grabbed a set of pajamas and went into the bathroom. ¡°That¡¯s why I want a daughter or granddaughter. Girls are so thoughtful. See, Zachary didn¡¯t even show me any concern since I arrived at the house. Seren, you always have my best interest at heart. ¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°Nana, you told me Zachary was attentive and caring when you first fixed us up. Your kids and grandchildren need to live their own lives. You can¡¯t baby them forever. You should be enjoying your retired life and stop worrying so much about them. ¡± The way she saw it, Grandma May¡¯s sons and daughters¨Cinw were most dutiful. ¡°I want to, but I can¡¯t. Did I mention Zack is caring and attentive? Did you feel that from him? Was I right?¡± Serenity grinned without saying a word. Zachary was indeed caring and attentive to the people he cared about. It was not just Zachary, but everyone else too. People tended to have their loved ones¡® best interests at heart. Grandma May climbed into Serenity¡¯s bed after taking a bath. By the time Serenity emerged from the bathroom, Grandma May was deep in slumber. The only thing was¡­ The olddy was snoring pretty loudly. Serenity was speechless. She could sleep through the storm if she were drunk. Otherwise, Serenity would be tossing and turning all night at the slightest noise. Letting out a sigh, Serenity epted her fate and climbed into bed to lie down next to Grandma May. Her bed had two pillows but only one duvet. Not only was Grandma May snoring, but she also hogged the duvet. She rolled away along with most of her duvet to one side, leaving Serenity with a small corner of it. With Grandma May¡¯s snoring thundering in her ears, Serenity tried to stuff her ears, but it only made her feel ufortable. Chapter 410 After trying for over ten minutes, Serenity gave up and slid off the bed with her pillow. Despite her intentions to bring the duvet along, Serenity could not pull theyered bundle from under Grandma May. Since the mornings and nights were getting chilly, it was easy to catch a cold if anyone slept without a nket. Her inws might point the finger at Serenity if she let Nana catch a cold on her first night. here. Plus, Serenity would not be able to live with it. Giving up on the duvet, Serenity went to grab a thick coat from her closet before slipping out with her pillow. It was pitch dark outside. Without turning on the lights, Serenity went to Mrs. Lane¡¯s room and knocked on the door. She cried, ¡°Are you asleep, Mrs. Lane?¡± Although awake at that point, Mrs. Lane yed dumb to Serenity¡¯s cries. She even pulled the covers over her head when Serenity knocked on the door and called out to her. Mrs. Lane made it appear she was asleep and heard nothing. ¡°Mrs. Lane. ¡± Since Serenity could not get Mrs. Lane up, she tried to turn the doorknob only to realize Mrs. Lane had locked the door. The door could not be unlocked even if she got a spare key. She could not get into Mrs. Lane¡¯s room, and Grandma May was snoring away in her bedroom. Serenity fell silent for a moment before helplessly retreating to the sofa. In the end, shey on the sofa and covered herself with her thick coat while waiting for the sandman to sprinkle dust in her eyes. Perhaps God was in cahoots with Grandma May because it started to pour. The night was already cold, to begin with. The rain only brought the freezing temperature into the house. Serenity¡¯s thick coat only offered protection up to her torso. With her legs exposed to the freezing cold, she simply could not fall asleep. Sitting up from the sofa, Serenity decided to grab a pair of socks in her bedroom to put on before trying dreand once more. Chapter 420 Chapter 420 Chapter 420 Serenity took a few steps forward when the bedroom door swung open. It was not her room but Zachary¡¯s. He walked out with his water ss in his warm pajamas. It appeared he wanted to pour himself a ss of water. The couple ran into each other. They came face¨Cto¨Cface. Zachary flicked the light switch and asked Serenity, ¡°Why aren¡¯t you in bed?¡± Serenity embarrassedly murmured, ¡°Your nana is snoring loudly, Zachary. I can¡¯t catch a wink. ¡± Zachary approached her room and opened the door to pop his head in. Sure enough, he heard the loud snoresing from his nana. It was obvious that Nana was faking it. Quietly closing the door, Zachary turned back to face Serenity and said, ¡°How do you n to sleep?¡± ¡°I was going to sleep with Mrs. Lane, but she¡¯s fast asleep. I couldn¡¯t wake her, and her door is locked from the inside. I can¡¯t get in. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. I guess my only choice is the sofa. ¡± Zachary went to pour himself a ss of water. He saw the pillow and coat on the sofa. ¡°It¡¯s pretty chilly tonight, especially with the rain. I couldn¡¯t sleep with my feet in the open, so I was going to grab a pair of socks in the room. Zachary, we should get a few duvets and a bed for the other guest room tomorrow. ¡± Everything was segregated between them when the couple first moved in together. It never crossed their mind to get a bed for the guest rooMs. After Mrs. Lane came along, Serenity shopped for a bed and wardrobe for Mrs. Lane, but the other guest room was left empty. This resulted in thedy of the house having no warm bed to sleep on for the night. ¡°Don¡¯t you have water in your room?¡± Serenity asked casually. She caught a glimpse inside his room when she helped him wash up. He had everything in there. Zachary kept a steady tone. ¡°Yeah, but it¡¯s not safe to drink. ¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Serenity remarked. Serenity went to sit on the sofa, watching Zachary as he poured a ss of water and walked back to his bedroom. ¡°Zachary,¡± Stopping at his bedroom door, Zachary turned around and was fixated on her with his dark eyes. His thin lips pursed as he waited for her to go on. ¡°Um¡­ Do you have an extra duvet in your room?¡± ¡°No. ¡± Chapter 42 ¡°Um¡­ Can you remove your bed linen for me to use for the night?¡± ¡°No. ¡± Serenity responded, ¡°¡­are you even a man? Can¡¯t you see that your wife doesn¡¯t have a ce to sleep or a nket over her?¡± Zachary approached her. After putting his ss on the coffee table, Zachary turned around and ced his hands on her sides. With his towering figure looming over her, Zachary came off as intimidating without. even touching Serenity. The dip at the cor of his dressing gown left Serenity¡¯s eyes wandering as he leaned into her. ¡°You can¡¯t be sure if I¡¯m a man if you just look. You need to try out the merchandise before. you can be sure whether I¡¯m a man. ¡± Serenity took her eyes away from his chest and met his gaze for a moment before letting out. an awkwardugh. ¡°God knows what I say in the heat of the moment. You¡¯re a man, a man¡¯s man. ¡± He must be impotent if he was not a man. Of course, Serenity would not dare say that. Men feared being called impotent the most. Chapter 422 Chapter 422 Chapter 422 Sighing inwardly, Zacharyy down next to Serenity. Even if he were to take her, it should not be in such circumstances. Serenity had to be at least willing and conscious. Otherwise, everything would be a blur to her, and she would not know who she got in bed with. Serenity slept like a log despite the change of environment, but Zachary was a different story. He had never shared a bed with anyone before, let alone a gorgeous and hot young woman. This woman happened to be his legal wife too. He was a fish out of water. Amid deep slumber, Serenity even curled up against him like he was a heater. Feeling frustrated, Zachary reached out to unbutton her pajamas, but he gave up after the first button. He looked at the sleeping beauty before leaning over for a kiss on her lips. In the end, he defeatedly let her snuggle up against him while meditating in his mind, ¡®I am in control of my body. I can do without!¡® Once he got the green light from her, Zachary was not going to hold back and would keep her from leaving the bed for three days! With sleepiness sweeping over him, Zachary fell asleep in a daze, bearing that thought. The couple had no idea that someone had their ear stuck to their bedroom door, listening for any soundsing from inside. It was a no¨Cbrainer to say that it was Grandma May. ¡°Well?¡± Mrs. Lane broke the silence. Although Mrs. Lane kept her voice down, Grandma May still had a scare. Surprised by Grandma May¡¯s huge reaction, Mrs. Lane stepped back in fright. Grandma May looked at Mrs. Lane while patting her chest and reprimanding her in a soft voice, ¡°Cecilia, why did you pop out without a sound? You scared me. ¡± Mrs. Lane replied, ¡°I thought you saw me. ¡± Grandma May was so wrapped up in prying into her grandson¡¯s room to notice that Mrs. Lane came out of her room. ¡°Go, go, go. ¡± Grandma May urged Mrs. Lane to leave. ¡°I can¡¯t hear anything. Zack¡¯s room must be soundproof. I pricked my ears but couldn¡¯t get anything. ¡± ¡°Is it possible that nothing happened between Mr. Zachary and the missus, that¡¯s why you. didn¡¯t get anything?¡± Grandma May was speechless. With her grandson¡¯s character in mind, Grandma May dejectedly answered, ¡°What a waste of my acting.This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Tonight was the perfect opportunity, but the brat didn¡¯t make use of it. Sigh. Why do I have an unromantic grandson who just doesn¡¯t get it?¡± Serenity would be shopping for a bed at the break of dawn. It would be hard for Grandma May to trick Serenity into Zachary¡¯s room. ¡± ¡°Old Mrs. York, you can¡¯t rush on this. You know how Mr. Zachary can be. Besides, they aren¡¯t. in love with each other yet. They¡¯ll consummate the marriage when the timees without your help. ¡± ¡°I just feel anxious for them. ¡± ¡°Good thingse to those who wait. ¡± Grandma May replied, ¡°¡­Cecilia, you¡¯re pretty honest, aren¡¯t you?¡± Ditching Mrs. Lane, Grandma May retreated to the room dejectedly. Mrs. Lane mumbled to herself, ¡°I¡¯m an honest woman, so of course, I speak honestly. ¡± She nced at Mr. Zachary¡¯s room, thinking to herself that it was progress for Mr. Zachary to let the missus into his bedroom. A rtionship had to be built every step of the way. There were no shortcuts or a way around it. Mrs. Lane believed Old Mrs. York worked herself up for nothing. It took time for Mr. Zachary to hit it off with anyone. There was no point in rushing it. Mrs. Lane returned to her room and revisited slumbend. In a single night, Mrs. Lane dreamed about the missus giving birth to a little girl. Overjoyed, Old Mrs. York rewarded the missus with five hundred million dors and freaked the missus. out¡­ Chapter 423 Chapter 423 Chapter 423 Rain poured the whole night and only stopped at first blush. Serenity woke up at her usual time. Opening her eyes, she had a full front view of Zachary¡®s handsome face. Serenity was caught in a daze untilst night¡®s events entered her mind. She sat up and tried to tiptoe her way out of there. After much thought, she looked back and stared at Zachary before nudging him. Zachary was lost in dreand, but it made sense since he survived yesterday by drinking coffee. He took off work today anyway, so he should sleep in. Although Serenity did not want to disturb Zachary, what she was doing was harassment. With his aesthetically pleasing face right in front of her, Serenity could not help but steal a few kisses. She murmured to herself, ¡°You have a better ¨C looking face than mine. I would¡®ve gotten it on with you if you didn¡®t always have a long poker face. I¡®ve got to toughen myself before I can canoodle with you. ¡± It took a few smooches before Serenity remembered the matter at hand. His bedroom was off¨Climits to her, and she was in here for a chance. While Zachary was asleep, Serenity should steal the contract and get rid of it. Otherwise, she would always feel the odds were not tipped in her favor since he inadvertently destroyed her copy of the contract. With that in mind, Serenity secretly rummaged through his room to find the contact while Zachary was in deep sleep. She dared not make a bigmotion in case of identally waking him. It was a pity she could not uncover Zachary¡®s written agreement despite going to the point of checking under his bed. There was a safe in his room that she could not open. ¡°Could it be in the safe?¡± Serenity murmured. It was only a contract. Yet, he locked it up in the safe. She was right about him keeping the contract somewhere safe. Following the fruitless search, Serenity carried her pillow and slipped out while it was still early and everybody was still in bed. She returned to her bedroom and pretended to be in the same bed with Grandma May the entire night. Nana was no longer snoring. However, it was already the break of dawn. After a change of clothes, she brushed her teeth and got ready to go out when Grandma May got up. ¡°Good morning, Nana. ¡± Grandma May smiled. ¡°Morning. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Are you heading out?¡± ¡°Yeah. I¡®m going to the market for groceries. ¡± ¡°I¡®ming with you. ¡± ¡°Alright. I¡®ll wait for you. ¡± Grandma May swiftly got out of bed. Ten minutester, Grandma May did not emerge alone. The three of them, including Mrs. Lane, headed to the market together. Downstairs, they ran into Jim. Jim¡®s natural instinct was to run to the greenery but reminded by his disguise as a designated driver, he settled down the urge to jump into a bush. Serenity smiled at Jim and said, ¡°Morning. ¡± Jim replied, ¡°Morning. Are you going shopping for groceries?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± Jim smiled, leaving the conversation at that. Serenity did not further the conversation and walked toward her car. She unlocked the car and let Grandma May and Mrs. Lane get in before driving them to the market. Grandma May asked casually, ¡°Do you know the man just now? Is he a nelghbor?¡± ¡°He lives in the neighborhood, but I don¡®t know which building he¡®s in. I often see him, so I guess his ce must be nearby. Zachary always hires him as the designated driver when he¡®s out drunk. That¡®s how I got to know him. ¡± Jim was quick¨Cwitted and thought on his feet. He made up a good story. Grandma May decided to inform the head of the security department to give Jim a raise. Chapter 424 Chapter 424 Chapter 424 By the time Zachary woke up, Serenity was gone. Looking rather upset, he mumbled to himself, ¡°You slipped away and didn¡®t even wait for me to wake up after sleeping with me. ¡± Serenity would be telling Zachary to watch his mouth if she was here. Sure, she slept with him but only in the same bed minus the hanky¨Cpanky. Zachary would be rendered speechless. He walked out of his room to find the threedies missing. Only the pets were around, Needless to say, the women must be getting groceries at the market. Zachary sat down on the swing on the balcony. He relived the beautiful moment of sharing a bed with his wife. In short, Zachary was not used to it, but he did look forward to doing it again. It did not take long before Serenity and the otherdies returned. Apart from groceries, Serenity also bought bed linens. Since the furniture shops were not open this early, she had not gotten a bed frame picked out. She was going to head back outter to get a new bed to set up before she could get to work. Oh, she was off work today. Zachary took leave from work too. He wanted to take her and Grandma May to some resort for a change of scenery. It should make Grandma May happy. Picking up on chatter, Zachary came out of the balcony and saw his dear wife carrying shopping bags of bedding. Although his eyes darkened, Zachary made noment. ¡°You¡®re home, Zack. I thought you went to work. ¡± Grandma May then gave his grandson an exasperated look. It was a waste of her great performance. Zack missed out on a golden opportunity. The b*stard just did not get it. ¡°Nana, I took the day off today. We¡®ll pick Sonny up at Bright Boulevard after breakfast. I¡®m taking you all to a resort in the west suburb for a stroll and fresh air. ¡± Paying no heed to Nana¡®s re, Zachary drew close and exined the reason for his presence at home. He went over to help Serenity with the stuff. The couple carried the bed linens into the empty guest room together. Hearing his words, Grandma May asked, ¡°For how long?¡± ¡°Just a day. ¡± ¡°It¡®s a resort, so one day isn¡®t enough to have fun. Since you took a day off today and tomorrow¡®s the weekend, we can have a nice three¨Cday vacation at the resort. ¡± Zachary looked at Serenity before replying in a steady voice, ¡°Liberty is getting on with the divorce with Hank tomorrow. As her family members, we must be there for her. We can¡®t let the Browns gain an upper hand and pick on Liberty. ¡± Serenity gave him a grateful look. Grandma May was delighted that her grandson was catching on to this game of love. Zachary called Liberty his family and spoke in a considerate and warm manner. Serenity was staring at him with heart¨Cshaped eyes. Not bad. Grandma May could expect a great¨Cgranddaughter if Zachary kept up with his act. ¡°You have a point. We should all go, so there¡®s strength in numbers. We can fight and argue with them. The Browns are nothing to be scared of. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary was not against Nana tagging along. Nana was pretty bad*ss during her younger days. Although she was old now and could not fight like she used to, Zachary believed that no one could win an argument with Nana. Liberty¡®s mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw were off the wall. The only way to win them over in a quarrel was to get an elder like Nana toe forward. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren, you should remind your sister to keep an eye out in case Hank moves his wealth and ie away. Your sister knows that, right? Look into the ount books and check whether the numbers tally. Don¡®t give away the money to the other woman. ¡± The old and experienced knew best. Grandma May had it more thought out than the youngsters. ¡°These scums tend to transfer their assets to their family. I have an old friend whose grandchildren are working in a bank. Just say the word and I¡®ll call in a favor to check if Hank moved his wealth to any of his family members. ¡± Chapter 425 Chapter 425 Chapter 425 Serenity was startled. There were too many cases of one party moving their wealth elsewhere during a divorce. In light of the Browus¡¯ character, Hank was likely to transfer bis assets away. ¡°Nana, I¡¯ll tell my sister about it. ¡± Grandma May replied, ¡°Good. Let Zack know if you need help. He¡¯ll get someone to investigate it. ¡± ¡°I won¡¯t hesitate to look for Zachary when the timees, Nana. ¡± The olddy was pleased with Serenity¡¯s readiness to seek help from Zachary. Zachary had smiling eyes, but he put on a straight face when Grandma May looked at him. Grandma May criticized him in her mind, ¡®Go on. Go on with your act! We¡¯ll see how long you can keep up with it. ¡¯ After breakfast, the group went to Bright Boulevard. Liberty was already waiting with her son at the neighborhood gate. Sonny had adapted to the new routine after going with his aunt in the past few days. He did not kick up a fuss today. ¡°Nana. ¡± Seeing that Grandma May was around too, Liberty said hello to her. Grandma May smiled and pumped her arm to give her a cheer. Liberty felt warm and cozy inside. Her sister¡¯s inws were way better than hers. Serenity carried her nephew and said to her sister, ¡°Liberty, do you know much about Hank¡¯s ie? Be on the lookout in case he moves the wealth. We¡¯ll being tomorrow. Don¡¯t panic. We have your back no matter what. ¡± Liberty replied, ¡°I have a general idea. He probably doesn¡¯t have much left from his sry, but my guess is his savings woulde up to about a million and a half with his side ie if he didn¡¯t secretly help out his sister¡¯s family. ¡± As for the expensive jewelry Hank gave Jessica, Liberty obtained proof to be used during the divorce proceedings. She intended to reim these expensive jewelry pieces. Hank was still Liberty¡¯s husband, so his assets were their joint property. It was Liberty¡¯s right to reim the bling from Jessica since Hank essed their joint ount to make the purchases without her permission. ¡°He¡¯s sneaky. The savings might not even be in his name. ¡± Liberty was without a word. She knew Hank and men better than ber sister did. Men treated their women princesses and thought the world of them when the former were in love. The same men would heartlessly ditch their women when their feelings were no more. ¡°Liberty, leave this to Zachary. His friend is in the investigating line of work. The friend can collect evidence of Hank¡¯s wealth transfer and proof of misusing his job to earn a side ie. You can deliver the evidence to his boss once the divorce is finalized. ¡± Hank gradually thought that Liberty was no longer good enough for him when he was promoted to a managerial position with an increased sry to match. Liberty had no reason not to trust Hank. She also ate a lot to provide enough breast milk for Sonny, but by doing so, her weight went out of control. Once Liberty walked away from the Browns, it would be high time Hank lost his job too. ¡°Would that trouble Zachary, Seren?¡± ¡°We¡¯re family. My husband and I are your family. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. We¡¯ll always stand behind you. Don¡¯t worry. ¡± Liberty gratefully uttered, ¡°Zachary has helped us a lot. Seren, you must be good to him. Don¡¯t be scared because of my failed marriage. There are still a lot of good guys in the world. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°¡­Liberty, do I treat him that badly? Why do you always talk like I torture him all the time?¡±. To Zachary, while there was no torture, Serenity would not give in to going all the way with him. As for Serenity, it was not like Zachary had the guts to do the deed anyway when she practically gave herself to him. Zachary would not be able to argue his way out of this. ¡°We can continue this when I get home from workter. I got to go, Seren. I don¡¯t want to bete. ¡± Chapter 426 Chapter 426 Chapter 426 Liberty did not say much to her sister. After handing her son to Serenity, she waved to her brother¨Cinw and the olddy before quickly riding away. She arrived at the office fifteen minutes before working hours started. In the beginning, it took her twenty minutes to run fiveps. Now that she had gotten used to running, her speed increased slightly. She could still make it. After parking the bike, she locked it and started running. Liberty ran fiveps around the small garden in front of the office building before going to work every day. Everyone in Lewis & Co. knew about it. At first, they watched Liberty like they were watching a show. Not two dayster, some people joined the run. They sat in the office every day and barely exercised, so it was easy to gain weight. However, they were not as fat as Liberty. Running a fewps before going to work helped them to lose some weight. Liberty spent fourteen minutes running fiveps, and thest minute was spent sprinting to clock in. She went outte today, so she got a little stuck. Fortunately, she was notte. ¡°Mr. Lewis. ¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis. ¡± Her colleagues¡® voices were heard greeting someone. Duncan Lewis was here. Liberty turned around. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. Sure enough, she saw Duncan entering inrge strides. He did not dress in a suit like Zachary did every day. He dressed normally and had never brought bodyguards wherever he went, nor made a grand show of himself or put on airs. No matter who greeted him, he always nodded in response. Liberty had been working here for a few days, and what she heard most in private was her colleagues talking about Duncan. She learned that Duncan was the fourth son of the Lewis family, and he was still single at the age of thirty¨Cfive. She also knew that he got involved in some shady business during his rebellious phase when he was in his youth. The scar on his face was a souvenir from that time. Due to his past coupled with his tall and fierce appearance, be looked like someone who was not to be trifled with. He did not have a girlfriend even at thirty ¨C five, and it was rumored that the nobledies mainly disliked him because of the scar on his face. They also disdained him for his shady past, fearing that they would suffer domestic violence after marriage. In thepany, some young female colleagues adored Duncan. As for whether the adoration was genuine or simply directed at Duncan¡®s status, Liberty did not dare specte. After all, different people had different viewpoints. She was just a new clerk who got in thanks to Duncan¡®s grace. She was already the focus of the wholepany. Everyone was polite to her on the surface, but secretly, they alienated her and tried to trip her up. Liberty tried her best not to meet Duncan in the office. Now that she bumped into him, she had to greet him mainly because it was toote for her to hide. ¡°Mr. Lewis. ¡± Liberty greeted him politely just like everyone else did. When Duncan passed by in front of her. He stopped to look her over twice, and asked, ¡°Are you still running?¡± ¡°Yes, I run fiveps every day before work. ¡± ¡°Good. Don¡®t eat junk food and eat less in the cafeteria too. ¡± If this woman controlled her mouth and moved her legs more, she could definitely lose weight. Her husband had an affair and wanted a divorce. Duncan was a man, so he knew the nature of men. He was confident that arge reason for Liberty¡®s husband having an affair was because he disdained her current appearance. If Liberty restored her original figure and one day met her ex¨Chusband again, Duncan wondered how the ex¨Chusband would react. Duncan, who had always been outspoken and straightforward without little tricks, suddenly looked forward to that day. Chapter 427 Chapter 427 Chapter 427 Duncan¡¯s words made Liberty¡¯s face burn red. It was because she was a glutton who kept eating without exercising that she grew fatter by the day. ¡°I will, Mr. Lewis. I promise I¡¯ll lose weight during the probation period. ¡± In the future, she would not only run in the morning, but also at night. She did not believe that she could not lose the fats in her body. ¡°Good. The probation period for you is shortened to one month. Good luck. ¡® Duncan said a few kind words before leaving Liberty and walked toward his exclusive elevator. In the blink of an eye, his robust figure disappeared into the elevator. When Liberty could not see him anymore, she finally looked away and turned her head to find that her boss was ring at her with displeasure. She pursed her lips and silently returned to the finance department office. She used to be a CFO. Although she was now a small clerk in the finance department, everyone tacitly agreed that there was something going on between Duncan and her. Thus, the current CFO, Kim, regarded Liberty as a thorn in her side, afraid that Liberty would take her ce. No one did anything explicitly, but many people tried tripping her up and setting all kinds of traps for her. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. They wanted her to make mistakes at work so she would leave before she passed her probation period. If it were targeted at Liberty from the past and she was ostracized by her colleagues this way, she would have quit long ago. However, she had to endure it now. She had to bear with it at least until she divorced and won custody of Sonny. After Liberty left, the other employees of the finance department gathered around Kim and said, ¡°Why doesn¡¯t she take a look in the mirror? How dare she make eyes at Mr. Lewis? Mr. Lewis even spoke so much with her. ¡± Liberty simply faced Duncan when she spoke to him, but these people took it as her making eyes at him. ¡°She¡¯s already married and has a two¨Cyear¨Cold son. ¡± Kim said faintly, ¡°There¡¯s no way Mr. Lewis will like her. ¡± ¡°Exactly. Look at how horrid she looks. No man will like her, let alone Mr. Lewis. Why isn¡¯t her husband divorcing her when she¡¯s so fat and ugly? Can he afford to keep feeding her with how much she eats?¡± Kimughed and did not answer. She already found out that Liberty and Duncan knew each other because Liberty had identally scratched Duncan¡¯s car, and her brother¨Cinw was acquainted with Duncan. Thus, he recruited her for her brother¨Cinw¡¯s sake. He never had any interest in her. However, what Kim was on guard against was not that there was a rtionship between Liberty and Duncan. She was worried that Liberty would rece her if Liberty was outstanding, Although everyone isted and framed Liberty under her suggestion, their tricks were all neutralized by Liberty. Just from that, it was clear that if Liberty was serious, there was nothing left for Kim to do. ¡°How does shee to work?¡± ¡°By riding adies¡® motorcycle. ¡± ¡°Is there a workshop near thepany?¡± ¡°I don¡®t think so. You¡®d have to go a long, long way to get to a workshop that fixes motorcycles. ¡± Kim hummed and walked away. Her group of supporters exchanged looks. Soon, everyone was on the same page. If they could not frame Liberty at work, then they would create all kinds of trouble for her in real life. That way, she would leave Lewis & Co. of her own volition once she was unable to put up with it any longer. Chapter 428 Chapter 428 Chapter 428 On the way to Westyard Resort, Serenity called Jasmine. ¡°Jas, I¡¯m going out with Nana for a walk today and can¡¯t go back to the store. I¡¯ll leave the store to you. ¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°No problem. You can stay with Grandma May and take a break. I¡¯ll take care of the store. Everything will be fine. ¡± It was the weekend tomorrow anyway. The store was usually closed during weekends. If they did open, it would only be Serenity inside, rushing her orders. After ending the call, Jasmine muttered to herself, ¡°Seren¡¯s life after marriage is getting more and more exciting. ¡± ¡°Jas. ¡± The familiar voice made Jasmine¡¯s pretty face turn cloudy. She looked at Shawn as he walked in, and said to him unpleasantly, ¡°Shawn, are you ignoring what I said to youst time? Don¡¯te here again. There¡¯s no chance between Seren and you!¡± It had just been a few days, but Shawn looked haggard. There were dark circles under his eyes, and his stubble grew out. At that moment, he did not look like a young man of twenty¨Ctwo years old. Jasmine¡¯s heart ached when she saw her cousin in this state. The hurt love inflicted on someone was invisible. Shawn had a crush on Serenity for many years, so it was hard to get him to let go right away. ¡°Jas. ¡± Shawn added painfully, ¡°I forced myself to endure it for the past few days, but I can¡¯t take it anymore. Every time I calm down, I¡¯ll think of Serenity again. I really, really like her. I love her. I can¡¯t give up on her. What am I supposed to do, Jas? Can you help me? Please?¡± He grabbed Jasmine¡¯s shoulders and begged, ¡°Jas, I¡¯m your cousin. No one can help me except you. ¡± Jasmine pped his hands away from her shoulders and said seriously, ¡°Shawn, how many times do you want me to say this? Serenity is married. She has a husband. That fact won¡¯t change no matter how much you love her. Just give up. She¡¯s not suitable for you, and there¡¯s no way she¡¯ll love you. ¡± She then ruthlessly warned him, ¡°If you dare shamelessly pester her, don¡¯t me me for being heartless. If you do that, it¡¯ll only make Serenity avoid you. You won¡¯t even be able to maintain your rtionship as normal friends. ¡± Shawn was in pain. He harbored feelings for her in secret for many years and was just about to confess, but his beloved woman had be someone else¡¯s wife. He could not even tell her about his deep love. He was sorrowful, but also remorseful. He regretted that he did not confess his love for her when he first realized his feelings. Even if he was underage at that time, he could have let Serenity wait for him to grow up. ¡°Jas, I want to see Serenity. Can I?¡± ¡°No!¡± Jasmine pped his arm in disappointment. ¡°Are you even listening to a word I¡¯m saying? Are you trying to harm Serenity?¡± ¡°Jas, can¡¯t you see how much pain I¡¯m in? Don¡¯t you feel sorry for me at all?¡± ¡°The pain will pass. It¡¯ll be better if you get over this. Shawn, you¡¯re still young. You¡¯re only twenty¨Ctwo. You still have your whole life ahead of you. With your status, there are manydies who will notice you. You should find a girl who can satisfy your mother and is a good match for your family, not Serenity. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. ¡°No matter how good Serenity is, she doesn¡¯t belong to you. I¡¯m not belittling my best friend, but the realities you two live in are too much of a difference. The Lowe family will never allow you, their heir, to marry a woman who¡¯s useless to you and your family. ¡°Serenity has no one backing her, and she has no power or authority. She just runs a small business which is of no use to argepany like yours. Do you think you can marry her just because you like her? Have you considered the realistic factors? ¡°Shawn, you¡¯re still too young to see things thoroughly enough. It¡¯s too naive to think that you can marry someone just because you like them. Listen to me and stop thinking about Serenity. She¡¯s already a married woman!¡± Chapter 429 Chapter 429 Chapter 429 The Lowe family was the inws to Jasmine¡¯s aunt, and she grew up witnessing how hard it was for her aunt to live in that family. The Lowe family became tycoons by demolishing buildings and relocating their inhabitants. They had many houses and shops for rent and possessed assets worth nearly a hundred million. Her aunt had it hard even after marrying into a wealthy family, let alone Serenity. Jasmine was not trying to belittle Serenity. She was just telling the truth. ¡°Serenity-¡± ¡°Serenity went on a date with her husband. ¡± Shawn¡¯s face instantly turned pale. He quickly searched for Serenity in the store, and Jasmine let him search every corner of the shop. He only believed his cousin¡¯s words when he could not find Serenity. She really was not in the store. He left, dispirited. Jasmine sighed. She hoped that Shawn would get over it sooner and not do something extreme and stupid because of love. As someone caught in the middle, she was in a dilemma. She was heartbroken for her cousin¡¯s deep feelings, but she had to defend her best friend. She could not let her cousin interfere with her best friend¡¯s marriage. At Westyard Resort, Zachary and Grandma May did note as Mr. Zachary and Old Mrs. York. Like the other visitors, they found a space at the parking lot and bought tickets. It was amercial resort, so they needed to buy admission tickets. After buying the tickets, Zachary handed them to Serenity and took Sonny from her arms. ¡°I¡¯ll carry Sonny. ¡± He did not want Serenity to get tired. ¡°Bring Sonny¡¯s stroller down and let him sit in it. We¡¯ll push him as we walk. It¡¯ll be easier. ¡± Zachary immediately handed the car keys to Mrs. Lane, who went to the car to bring Sonny¡¯s stroller. After checking the tickets, the group entered the resort. Serenity was immediately attracted to the beauty of the resort. She said while walking, ¡°Is this andscaped garden?¡± ¡°Yes, but it¡¯s divided into Oriental and French gardens. The front part is the Oriental garden while the back is the French garden. The resort is huge, so we¡¯ll only be able to scratch the surface even after strolling for a whole day. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. ¡± The couple pushed Sonny in the front while Grandma May and Mrs. Lane walked behind them. ¡°Cecilia, you go and push Sonny. The three of us can walk together. Let the young couple walk by themselves and make it a date. ¡± Mrs. Lane whispered, ¡°Mr. Zachary doesn¡¯t even dare hold the missus¡¯s hand. What kind of date is that?¡± Grandma May red at her and whispered back, ¡°Can¡¯t you see Seren pushing Sonny? Even if Zack wanted to hold her hand, he had no opportunity to do so. ¡± Mrs. Lane then concurred, ¡°Oh, you¡¯re right. I¡¯ll go and push Sonny. ¡± ¡°Act natural. Don¡¯t be too deliberate. ¡± ¡°I know. ¡± The two discussed their n and followed the couple¡¯s steps. Serenity walked and paused ever so often, wanting to take pictures. ¡°Ms. Hunt, let me push Sonny. ¡± Mrs. Lane used that as her opening and pushed the stroller that Sonny was in. ¡°This way, you can feel free to take as many photos as you want. I¡¯ve been here several times with the family and don¡¯t find it novel anymore, so I won¡¯t want to take photos. ¡± Serenity did not doubt her words at all. Now that she did not have to push Sonny, Serenity walked very slowly. She felt like she was walking inside a painting. She could not resist capturing the scenery on her phone. Grandma May deliberately brushed Zachary¡¯s arm when she passed him. She gave him a wink and pushed Sonny forward with Mrs. Lane as if nothing happened. When Serenity finished taking pictures, she realized that Grandma May and Mrs. Lane had gone far away. ¡°Zachary, let¡¯s go or we¡¯ll lose Nana and the others. ¡± Chapter 430 Chapter 430 Chapter 430 Serenity stuffed the phone back into her pants pocket and instinctively pulled Zachary along, with her. This was the best chance. Zachary immediately held her hand and let her pull him along. As they walked, he interlocked their fingers. ¡®Yeah, it feels so good to hold my wife¡¯s small hand!¡¯ Zachary was an arrogant man who had no romantic experience. Now that he had seeded in holding his wife¡¯s hand, his heart melted like butter in the sun. Serenity noticed him sping her hand and looked down to see their interlocked fingers. It was he who was holding onto her. She secretly nced at Zachary. When she saw that his face was still arrogant and cold, she cursed in her heart, ¡®He¡¯s taking advantage of me while putting on such a serious face. ¡¯ Thus, she drew a few strokes on his palm with her thumb. When he looked over, she turned to look ahead with a serious expression. When it came to taking advantage of the situation while acting decent, she would not lose. Zachary¡¯s lips curled up. He liked this nature of hers. She was not shy and did whatever she wanted. ¡°When your sister¡¯s matter is settled, I¡¯ll bring you here again for a few days when you¡¯re free. ¡± He pointed to the wooden vis in the distance. ¡°It feels nice living in those houses. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll hold you to that. ¡± ¡°When have I ever lied to you?¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Even if you lied to me, I can¡¯t do anything to you if you don¡¯t admit it. ¡± Zachary suddenly fell silent. That was because he really did lie to her. In fact, it was a huge lie. His sudden silence caused Serenity to look at him. She smiled and asked, ¡°Did you really lie to me?¡± Zachary was stumped for a moment. Fortunately, the ringing of Serenity¡¯s phone saved him and let him breathe a sigh of relief. The one who called her was Elisa. ¡°Serenity, aren¡¯t you in the store today?¡± Elisa called after she went to the bookstore but could not find Serenity. ¡°Yeah, I went on a short getaway today. ¡± Elisa got excited and asked, ¡°Where are you at? I¡¯m really bored now. Send me the address and I¡¯ll go over Let¡¯s have fun all day long!¡± ¡°I¡¯m at Westyard Resort. I¡¯ll send you the addresster. ¡± Beside Serenity, Zachary heard her say this and tightened his grip on her hand. ¡°This Elisa Stone is like a ghost haunting us. ¡®I finally had a chance to go on a date with Serenity, but she wants toe over and join us. Doesn¡¯t she know that people hate third wheels?¡¯ ¡°By the way, who are you with?¡± ¡°I¡¯m with my husband and his grandmother. His grandmother isn¡¯t in a good mood, so we brought her out for a breather. ¡± Elisa said regretfully, ¡°Forget it, then. You guys go ahead. Tell me next time you visit so we can go together. Have fun! The scenery there is mesmerizing. It belongs to York Corporation. ¡± Serenity said casually, ¡°It¡¯s a property of York Corporation? Theirpany is indeed huge. They have property everywhere. ¡± Elisaughed and said, ¡°They¡¯re not just the richest family in Wiltspoon in name. Their family is truly wealthy and powerful. All the ces with good scenery have been bought out by their family, and the resorts they build are especially popr. ¡± Serenity said, ¡°The head of their family has a sharp eye. ¡± Elisa was silent for a moment. She tried to sound normal and said, ¡°Mr. York does have a keen eye. When York Corporation was handed to him, it flourished many folds with each passing day. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. My brother is working his best just to catch up to him. ¡± Chapter 431 Chapter 431 Chapter 431 Serenity was aware of Elisa¡¯s deep affection for Mr. York and did not want to linger on this topic lest Elisa felt upset. Thus, she quickly changed the subject. As they chatted, Elisa talked about what she was up to now. She said, ¡°My brother was worried that I¡¯d think of Mr. York when I¡¯m bored and be upset, so he gave me a task. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. He wants me to find my aunt. ¡± ¡°Your aunt?¡± Serenity did not know anything about the Stone family. She only knew that they were a family second only to the Yorks. The only Stone family member she knew was Elisa. ¡°Speaking of which, my mom¡¯s story was quite simr to your sister and you. My grandparents died early too, and no rtives were willing to take my mom and her sister in. In the end, they were sent to an orphanage where they stayed for a while. My aunt was still young, but she was cute, so she got adopted by a rich couple who weren¡¯t able to have a child even after many years of marriage. ¡°My mom was left in the orphanage, but she had always remembered her younger sister. When she grew up and had the means, she started to look for her sister. It was very difficult to find someone in the past since the inte wasn¡¯t as developed as it is now. It was easier to locate missing people with current technology and connection. ¡°My mom hasn¡¯t found my aunt yet. Some time ago, we found the couple who adopted my aunt. We were all very happy and thought that we could help my mom find her sister. Unexpectedly, when we apanied my mom there and asked about the whereabouts of my aunt, they said they didn¡¯t know. ¡± Serenity grew nervous when she heard this and asked, ¡°How could they not know? They adopted your aunt. Did they deliberately say they didn¡¯t know because they didn¡¯t want your mom to reconnect with your aunt?¡± Elisa said angrily, ¡°That¡¯s not it. One year after they adopted my aunt, they had a child of their own, so their feelings toward my aunt turned sour. They started beating and scolding her. They were afraid that if they raised her, she wouldpete with their own child for the family property. The couple decided to give my aunt to another couple who had no children. ¡± Serenity was furious when she heard that. ¡°They adopted your aunt because they didn¡¯t have children and only got a child after they adopted her. Your aunt brought them blessings, so they should have been nicer to your aunt instead. How could they beat and scold her? They even gave her to someone else. That¡¯s too much!¡± ¡°They didn¡¯t end up well. Their child grew up spoiled and leads a life of dissipation. He lost all their family assets and often scolded and beat his own parents. ¡± Elisa was not sympathetic at all when she saw the couple¡¯s fate. In fact, she felt great pleasure. ¡°Have you found the second couple who adopted your aunt?¡± ¡°We did, but their family¡¯s condition was bad. They felt they couldn¡¯t afford to keep my aunt and gave her away too. When 23 we found the third family that had adopted her, the family had all died of illness. ¡± opped win on Serenity¡¯s heart seized as she listened. ¡°I don¡¯t know where my aunt was sent to. We finally got a lead, but another dead end again. My mom is really depressed. Some time ago, my dad and I apanied her on a vacation to rx. ¡± Elisa came back early because of Zachary, but her father continued to apany her mother. ¡°Now, I¡¯m helping my mom look for my aunt. If God has eyes and knows that my mom is still so concerned about my aunt, He¡¯ll definitely let me find her. ¡± ¡°Yes, you¡¯ll definitely find her. Maybe your aunt is also looking for your mom. If you post the story about your mom and her sister online, maybe your aunt will see it and contact you. ¡± ¡°My mom said that my aunt was too young to remember much when they separated. She couldn¡¯t recall at all if there was no one to tell her. ¡± Chapter 432 Chapter 432 Chapter 432 ¡°When my mom and her sister were separated, they took a photo. They had a copy each so they could use it to find each other, but my aunt¡¯s photo was burned by the first couple who adopted her. ¡°My mom kept the photo too, but it¡¯s been several decades since. Even if she kept it in good condition, it¡¯s not easy to find someone using it. My brother also posted the photo on the inte, but there was no news. The only way to find my aunt is if her children look like her, and my mom sees them by chance. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Otherwise, it would be utterly difficult to find. Even then, the chances were almost zero. ¡°God helps those who help themselves. Elisa, you¡¯ll be able to find your aunt one day. ¡± Serenity could not help much except to cheer Elisa on. The Stone family had money, power, and connections, but they were unable to find her aunt even after searching for years. Someone like Serenity who had no power or connections had no way of helping. ¡°I hope we find her sooner thanter and reunite my mom with her sister. Serenity, tell me if you know someone who was adopted. I won¡¯t let go of any possibility. ¡± Serenity suddenly thought of her own mother. She asked Elisa, ¡°How old is your aunt this year?¡± NO ¡°Fifty¨Cfour years old. My mom and her sister haven¡¯t seen each other for fifty years. ¡± Serenity was silent for a moment. ¡°My mom would be fifty four too if she were still alive. My mom was actually not my grandparents¡® biological daughter. She was picked up and adopted by my grandparents. My mom only gave birth to my sister and I, but you¡¯ve already seen us both. ¡± There were many people who were adopted. Serenity would not think that her mother was the person the Stone family was looking for. Elisa had also met Serenity and Liberty before. Liberty looked like their mother, but Elisa had no reactions when she saw Liberty, so their mother could be ruled out. Elisa was aware that Serenity¡¯s parents died in a car ident fifteen years ago. She thought her aunt would not pass away so young, so she did not think much about it and asked, ¡°Besides your mother, do you know anyone else who was adopted?¡± ¡°There are a lot of people in my hometown who don¡¯t have daughters and they adopted daughters, but the ages don¡¯t match up. Does your aunt look like your mother?¡± ¡°No, my mom looks like my granddad, and my aunt looks like my grandma. My siblings and I take after both our parents more, but I think there¡¯ll be simrities more or less. ¡± Serenity said, ¡°In that case, I haven¡¯t seen a middle-aged woman who looks a little like you. You can send me the photo of your mom and aunt together someday. I¡¯ll keep an eye out for you. ¡± ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll send it to youter. It¡¯s just that my aunt was still a 2/1 toddler when the photo was taken. Women change a lot from when they were young, so we don¡¯t know what she looks like now. ¡± Serenity paused. ¡°It¡¯s fine, just send it to me. I¡¯ll draw a portrait of your aunt when I¡¯m free. If I imagine what she looks like when she grows up and draw it out, it¡¯ll make it easier for you to find her. ¡± Elisa said, ¡°You know how to draw too? That¡¯s great! Why didn¡¯t I think of this method?¡± Serenity laughed. ¡°That¡¯s why I told you to tell me if you encounter difficulties. Two heads are better than one. ¡± Chapter 433 Chapter 433 Chapter 433 Elisa said gratefully, ¡°Serenity, if you help us find my aunt, you¡¯ll be our family¡¯s benefactor. We won¡¯t treat you badly. ¡± ¡°We¡¯re friends, so don¡¯t be such a stranger. I¡¯m also thinking of my mom. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. If she were still alive, my sister and I would also do our best to help her find her family. ¡± Her mother passed away more than ten years ago, so she did not have a deep impression of her mother. Fortunately, her sister looked like her mother, so she could remember thetter by looking at her sister. ¡°I won¡¯t disturb your date with your husband. Have fun and tell me when the wedding is held. I¡¯ll be your bridesmaid. ¡± Elisa teased Serenity a little and took the initiative to end the call. ¡°Was it Ms. Stone again?¡± Zachary asked nonchntly. ¡°Yes. She wanted toe over to meet us, but she changed her mind when she heard that I was with you. ¡± Zachary snorted coldly in his heart. ¡®Good!¡® ¡°Elisa is really a good girl, but your boss¡­¡± Thinking of Mr. York wearing a wedding ring, Serenity sighed. ¡°I guess they¡¯re just not meant for each other. ¡± ¡°What did you two talk about? I heard you mention your mother. ¡± Zachary changed the subject. He did not want to gossip about himself with her. They both walked forward shoulder¨Cto¨Cshoulder while 1/4 holding hands. ¡°Serenity said she¡¯s focusing on finding her aunt now. It¡¯s better to have something to do, lest she thinks of Mr. York all the time. ¡°I didn¡¯t know Mrs. Stone grew up in an orphanage. She had a younger sister who was adopted, but got shuttled to different families several times. Even till now, they still can¡¯t find her sister. ¡°My mom was also adopted by my grandparents, but she has no rtives looking for her. She doesn¡¯t have memories of her early childhood either. All she remembered was that her previous adopted parents liked to scold and beat her, and she escaped because she couldn¡¯t stand it. ¡°She escaped when she was only seven or eight years old. She had no way of feeding herself, so she fainted from hunger by the side of the road until she was picked up by my grandparents and they adopted her. Then, she lived a stable life, met my father and married him before giving birth to us. Both my parents knew how to earn money, and our family condition was getting better, but¡­¡± She trailed off. Zachary knew about all that. ¡°Mrs. Stone still remembers her sister, and the family is pouring money and effort to find her. They never gave up looking for her. The sister might have been misfortunate, but she was much luckier than my mother. At least there is family still thinking about her. ¡°My mom doesn¡¯t remember if she had a family. Her environment was constantly changing when she was young, and she was always beaten, scolded, and starved. She had a 274 serious illness once and forgot everything from before she was seven or eight years old. ¡± Zachary held her hand tightly and said in a deep voice, ¡°Your mother did not have rtives looking for her. Her rtives are either gone, or she was abandoned. In that era, many people did not like giving birth to daughters and threw them away. ¡± Serenity thought about it and said, ¡°That¡¯s true. If my mom was abandoned, there¡¯s no need to look for her rtives even if they exist. ¡± Her mood became gloomy while speaking about herte mother. ¡°Zachary, I want to go back to pay respects to my parents. The Hunt family hasn¡¯t let us visit my parents¡® graves since they drove my sister and I out of town. They warned us and threatened to raze my mother¡¯s grave to the ground if we dared visit it secretly. ¡°They have also relocated my parents¡® graves, so I don¡¯t even know where they¡¯re buried now. ¡± Serenity was reluctant to reconcile with her horrid rtives back home mainly because they had gone too far. It was her parents¡® graves, but they were not allowed to visit. The sisters could not resist when they were young, but now that they had grown up, the Hunt family moved the graves without telling them so the sisters could not visit even if they wanted to. They went so far before but now they were trying to make peace with her now. However, Serenity could not forgive them. Zachary stopped in his tracks. Serenity stopped too. The couple looked at each other. Zachary sped her shoulders and promised solemnly, ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll make sure your sister and you can visit your parents¡® graves one day. You¡¯ll also get back the house that your parents had left behind. ¡± Chapter 434 Chapter 434 Chapter 434 ¡°That¡¯s for sure. I¡¯ll go to court with them to get my parents¡® house back!¡± ¡°Since you have such confidence, don¡¯t feel depressed any more. We¡¯re out to have fun today, so we should be happy. We¡¯ll deal with the unresolved matters from the past one by one and solve them eventually. ¡± He took Serenity into his arms, squeezed her, and said gently, ¡°You still have me. Even if the sky falls, you don¡¯t have to worry. I¡¯ll hold it up for you. ¡± Serenity did not struggle and quietly snuggled against his chest. Only after a few moments did she leave his embrace. Her face was a little weird. ¡°There are many people around us. ¡± Zachary took her hand casually and led her forward. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°We¡¯re husband and wife, not having an affair. What are we afraid of?¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°It¡¯s no wonder my sister always tells me to be nice to you. ¡± He had alreadypletely won over her sister. After their sudden marriage, as the couple got along, Serenity realized that although this man had shorings, there were more advantages than disadvantages. Then again, everyone had their own shorings. She herself was also full of them. When it came down to it, Zachary was so much better than that scumbag, Hank. 163 22-872NN (ANY Serenity¡¯s already restless heart once again stirred up into a frenzy for Zachary. She had to find an opportunity to steal his copy of the agreement and destroy it. Then, she could tease him all she wanted. When she got him then and they became a real couple, he would not mention the six¨Cmonth contract anymore. She nced at his face, which was as stoic as usual. Serenity sighed. ¡®It¡¯s better if I train my heart to be stronger first. Otherwise, even if I strip him naked, my fire will be extinguished immediately by his cold face. ¡¯ ¡°Then be nicer to me. ¡± ¡°Am I not nice enough to you?¡± Zachary pursed his lips and said nothing. They both gave and took as a couple. Serenity was not the kind of person who only enjoyed other people¡¯s kindness and did not return it. If he treated her well, she would treat him just as well. If he did her ten favors, she would also do ten favors for him. In short, she would never owe him anything. If he wanted her to be better to him, he had to be better to her first. A couple had to work together for their marriage to be longsting. ¡°Where¡¯s Nana and Mrs. Lane? I don¡¯t see them anymore. ¡± AON ANDA Serenity remembered Grandma May and hurriedly asked Zachary, ¡°You¡¯re tall and can see further. Do you see them in front?¡± Zachary looked ahead and replied, ¡°I don¡¯t see them, but it¡¯s fine. Nana has been here several times and is familiar with the ce. We¡¯ll call herter and ask her to wait for us in the restaurant. ¡± This was their own property after all. Who would be more familiar with this ce besides them? Zachary was not at all worried that Grandma May would get lost. He dared say that Grandma May and Mrs. Lane had walked ahead so quickly on purpose. They deliberately pushed Sonny away and walked quickly because they wanted to leave the couple alone. They wanted the couple¡¯s rtionship to improve and taste the sweetness of dating. Chapter 435 Chapter 435 Chapter 435 Serenity was not dumb. Grandma May and Mrs. Lane walked away to create an opportunity for the couple to be alone. It was rare that Zachary did not act cold and reject her, so she enjoyed the taste of dating. The couple held hands and strolled around the Oriental garden. Serenity especially liked this garden style with its antique colors and fragrance. ¡°Zachary. ¡± ¡°Yeah?¡± Zachary¡¯s mind was not on the scenery. He kept stealing nces at the woman beside him. When he heard Serenity call him, he stopped to look at her again with a straight face, as if he had been looking ahead the whole time instead of peeking at her. ¡°You work in York Corporation, so you should know what properties are under yourpany, right? How many resorts like this one did your boss invest in?¡± Zachary thought about it and said, ¡°Our company has branches in all major cities. We invest and operate in all kinds of industries, but only in two vacation resorts like this were invested in and built. That¡¯s because it¡¯s very difficult to choose a site, and the capital needed to invest in creating such a vacation resort is also pretty significant. 1/3 ¡°This resort is wholly owned by ourpany, and the one far away in Jensburg is a joint venture with the richest family in Jensburg. Because of the long distance, they manage most of it while we have some shares for the dividends. ¡± Serenity looked around. She could not see the end of the Oriental garden, let alone the whole of the resort. Zachary also mentioned that they would only manage to scratch the surface even if they walked the whole day. It was clear howrge the resort was. ¡°Your boss¡® family really is the richest in Wiltspoon. They¡¯re so rich and powerful that they have properties everywhere. ¡± Zachary kept mum. The York family had been operating in Wiltspoon for several generations, and their wealth was umted by that many generations as well. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. Furthermore, there were no members of the York family who were loafers, so their wealth only increased. If he was asked how much money the York family had, he did not know either. In any case, the amount was in the hundreds of billions. Serenity suddenly patted him on the shoulder. Zachary looked at her in confusion. ¡°Zachary, yourst name is York, and you also work in York Corporation, but you¡¯re just a manager while the other guy who shares yourst name is the richest man in the city. You have to work hard! If other people know yourst name, they¡¯ll think that you¡¯re the heir of the York family. ¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°There are many rich men in the country, and even more people who share the samest name as them. How many of them are from the York family? There are also many people in the world who have the same first andst names. ¡± Serenity alsoughed. ¡°That¡¯s true. People who hear that myst name is Hunt always ask if William Hunt is my ancestor. I checked, but my ancestors really have nothing to do with William Hunt. We just have the samest name. ¡± Zachary suddenly asked, ¡°Serenity, if I was the heir of the York family and was a billionaire, would you believe it?¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°I¡¯ll believe it if you have evidence, but I¡¯ll never believe it if you can¡¯t prove that you¡¯re a billionaire. ¡°Billionaires aren¡¯t ordinary people. Do you think you can find one just by strolling down the street? We got married out of convenience. If I ended up marrying a billionaire just like this, pigs might start flying. ¡± He worked in York Corporation and also had York as hisst name, so it was easy for others to suspect that he was rted to the richest man in the city. However, the car he drove, the house he lived in, and the daily expenses he spent with her were no different from that of ordinary people. Furthermore, if he really were the heir of the York family, how could he marry her, a woman with no power or background? Even if she saved his grandmother, he did not have to repay her by sacrificing his marriage, right? Chapter 436 Chapter 436 Chapter 436 It was said that the olddies in the gentry were not easy to get along with, but Grandma May was affable, just like an ordinary old woman. She also usually dressed inly and did not seem like she was part of the gentry at all. Zachary¡¯s gaze was deep. He touched the top of her head and said in a low voice, ¡°You¡¯re a very realistic person who doesn¡¯t dream. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m a person who lives in real life. Even if I want to dream, it depends on the dream. It¡¯s a waste of time dreaming that kind of unrealistic dream, not to mention it¡¯ll affect my sleep too. ¡± Zachary pursed his lips and said nothing. After strolling for half a day, the couple met up with Grandma May and the rest. They settled on lunch in an interesting restaurant. If not for the modern facilities inside, Serenity would have thought they traveled back to a tavern from bygone times. Sonny was especially happy today. Grandma May and Mrs. Lane took him to feed the fishes and bought him as much fish feed as he wanted to feed them to his heart¡¯s content. It was easy to get tired when having fun, and he fell asleep in Serenity¡¯s arms even before he finished his meal. ¡°Zack, Nana is old and can¡¯t walk that far. You take Seren for an afternoon stroll while Cecilia and I rest here with Sonny. Let¡¯s stay the night here. That way, we can take our time to enjoy ourselves. ¡± Zachary gave a faint hum. Serenity asked, ¡°Or we could go back?¡± Grandma May said, ¡°Since you¡¯re here, you have to finish exploring the ce. It¡¯ll be a waste of the ticket if you go back after venturing into just half of the resort. ¡°It¡¯s okay, Seren. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. You and Zack go for a stroll in the French garden. I¡¯ve been here a few times, so it doesn¡¯t matter if I don¡¯t go again. Don¡¯t worry about Sonny either. Cecilia and I will take care of him. ¡± With Grandma May¡¯s advice, Serenity decided not to waste the tickets bought. After the meal, she took a short rest and continued to hang out with Zachary. Zachary boldly took her hand. From behind, the young couple looked like lovebirds. Grandma May hurriedly took out her cell phone and captured photos and videos of the couple¡¯s fading backs. She said, ¡°I¡¯ll take a picture and send it to Zack so he can look back on it when he has the time. I wish him godspeed. Now, my goal is. ¡¯t to hold my great¨Cgranddaughter. It¡¯s to make the couple be a real couple first, not just one in name. ¡± Mrs. Laneughed. ¡°Mr. Zachary finally figured out his feelings for the missus. He moves quickly. ¡± He was the head of the York family, after all. His decisions were usually crisp and clear. Mrs. Lane firmly believed that Zachary would win over Serenity very soon. ¡°That¡¯s not necessarily true. Some people, like Zack, have high IQ but low EQ. It¡¯s not that bad though. At least there¡¯s some progress. I was really worried when they had a misunderstanding and started a cold war some time ago. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s normal for couples to have a few misunderstandings. ¡± Mrs. Lane thought, ¡®Mr. Zachary and the missus got married out of convenience with no emotional foundation, so they still can¡¯t trust each otherpletely. It¡¯s normal to have misunderstandings, conflicts, and cold wars. ¡® Grandma May stopped taking pictures and said, ¡°I hope they won¡¯t have any misunderstandings in the future. With Zack¡¯s character, it¡¯s a lifelong matter once he falls for someone. He¡¯s domineering and has a strong urge to control. If they fall out again, who knows how long it¡¯ll take for them to reconcile. ¡± She sighed at the thought of her grandson concealing his identity to examine Serenity¡¯s character. That was andmine. Once it explodes, the consequences would be unimaginable. However, that was the path chosen by Zachary himself. No matter what the consequences were, he had to bear with it himself. Chapter 437 Chapter 437 Chapter 437 Time flew by when having fun. The day was over in the blink of an eye. Serenity strolled all day, arrived home, took a shower, and fell asleep. Grandma May saw Serenity going back to her room and thought of repeating her trick. Unexpectedly, when she entered Serenity¡¯s room, thetter was already sleeping soundly, leaving the old woman with no chance to y her acting skills. After leaving Serenity¡¯s room, she came out to see her grandson sitting on the sofa watching TV. Even though her heart was disappointed, she could not help but get angry. She walked over and snatched the TV remote control from Zachary¡¯s hand. ¡°Have you forgotten what to say and do aftering home?¡± Zachary looked at his grandmother and said innocently, ¡± We¡¯re already back. What do I have to say or do?¡± He made a lot of progress today. He held Serenity¡¯s hand for the whole day. Serenity also talked to him about anything now. Her trust in him was growing. Grandma May was speechless. ¡°Nana, you must be tired too after ying all day long. Shall I ask Mrs. Lane to help you clean up the guest room?¡± 1/3 A Grandma May sighed and hummed in agreement. Mrs. Lane had already cleaned up the guest room without being ordered by Zachary. ¡°You rest early too. ¡± She admonished him, got up, and went to the guest room. Zachary sat in the hall for a while before turning off the TV and going to his room. As soon as he was inside, he called Josh. ¡°I was just about to send you a message to ask if it was convenient to call you, but you called first. Great minds think alike. ¡± Zachary walked to the set of sofas in his room, sat down, and asked indifferently, ¡°What do you want to tell me?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting at Beans and Cream for Ms. Sox at ten in the morning tomorrow. Ask your wife to inform Ms. Sox for me. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°So you still care about this blind date?¡± ¡°You¡¯re the one who is matchmaking us. I have to be more enthusiastic so I won¡¯t let you down. ¡± ¡°Fine, I¡¯ll talk to Serenityter and have her tell Ms. Sox. You¡¯d better buck up. Ms. Sox has high standards. ¡± Joshughed. ¡°You speak as if my standards are low. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. I wouldn¡¯t have bothered to meet her if it was anyone else ying matchmaker. ¡± Although he was often forced to see his boss¡¯s PDA, which envied him, he still enjoyed the carefree life of being single. The heir of the Buchams was already thirty¨Cthree years old, but he was not married yet. 2/3 Why did Josh need to hurry then? ¡°You won¡¯t regret it. Ms. Sox is very suitable for you. ¡± Joshughed. ¡°I knew she was suitable for me just by how shey down at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party. ¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°It seems she became famous after that incident. ¡± ¡°Hahaha, that¡¯s right. Now, as long as Ms. Sox¡¯s name is mentioned, everyone will think about the girl whoy on the ground at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s banquet. You don¡¯t know this, but her aunt is Mrs. Lowe. You didn¡¯t see the look on her face back then. Iughed for a few days when others described it to me. ¡± Zachary said, ¡°It¡¯s a shame you didn¡¯t manage to join in on the fun. ¡± ¡°Exactly. In the future, I¡¯ll go to every banquet I¡¯m invited to so I don¡¯t miss a good show. ¡± ¡°Gossiper. ¡± ¡°How would I get information for you if I don¡¯t gossip?¡± Zacharyughed and said, ¡°Fine, I want you to find some information for me. I want to know how many assets Hank Brown really has, and whether he transferred his property in advance. I want something with evidence. ¡± Chapter 438 Chapter 438 Chapter 438 Josh said casually, ¡°When do you want it?¡± ¡°The sooner the better, of course. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll give it to you tomorrow. Is that toote?¡± ¡°That¡¯s fine. ¡± Tomorrow was when Liberty and Hank would be talking about divorce. It would be advantageous for Liberty if she held evidence of Hank¡¯s assets. ¡°You¡¯re really going all out for your sister¨Cinw. I don¡¯t see you working so hard for your ownpany. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment and said, ¡°Serenity is full of gratitude to me now. ¡± ¡°Gratitude is not love. You have to do more for her to fall in love with you. However, if you can help solve her sister¡¯s problem, she¡¯ll feel that you¡¯re an amazing person. She¡¯ll grow more dependent on you, and her heart will be moved subconsciously. ¡± Josh did not have a girlfriend, but his analysis was clear and logical. After the analysis, he asked Zachary, ¡°Did you fall in love? Don¡¯t try to make your wife fall in love with you without the intention of loving her back. That¡¯s called ying with her feelings. ¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°Tell me what kind of reaction proves that I¡¯m in love. I get nervous and excited when I hold her hand. Is that love? When I see her smile, I feel happy as well and want to kiss her. Is that love?¡± ¡°Woah, not bad, Zachary. You¡¯ve already gotten to his point? I thought you only knew how to put on a long face, purse your lips, re at others, and ignore them. ¡± Zachary wanted to hang up the phone. Only Josh dared make fun of him to his face like this. However, Zachary still depended on him for information. ¡°I told you long ago that you were showing concern for your sh marriage wife, but you stubbornly refused to admit it. When your wife had a meal with Shawn, you fumed for several days but refused to admit that you were jealous. To be honest, you¡¯re really hard to deal with when you¡¯re jealous. ¡± Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°I wasn¡¯t jealous!¡± ¡°Not even an idiot would believe you now. I¡¯ll call someone to check on the properties under Hank¡¯s name first. I¡¯ll also check if anyone in his family has arge amount of savings. I¡¯ll discuss with you another day whether or not you were jealous. ¡± Josh did not forget to give a reminder. ¡°Don¡¯t forget to help me inform Ms. Sox that I¡¯ll be waiting for her at Beans and Cream tomorrow at 10 o¡¯clock in the morning. I¡¯ll be holding a red rose in my hand. ¡± ¡°Got it,¡± Zachary replied in amusement. His friend was really looking forward to his blind date this time. He also hoped that Josh and Jasmine would click. Jasmine was 7/3 Serenity¡¯s best friend, so Zachary also thought of her as his friend. He naturally hoped that Jasmine could achieve happiness as well. After the call ended, Zachary wanted to call Serenity, but he remembered that she was asleep and could not bear to wake her up. He thought about it and got up to go into the small study. He took a pen and paper to scribble something. Then, he took the note and went to Serenity¡¯s room. Serenity thought that Grandma May would sleep with her and did not lock the door before going to bed, so Zachary entered her room easily. He ced the note on the dresser and ced her cell phone on top of it. That way, she would see the note when she woke up and notify Jasmine as soon as possible. After doing all that, he stood in front of the bed, staring at Serenity who was in slumbend for a while, before silently walking out. Serenity slept soundly, but Zachary tossed and turned. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. He only spent one night in the same bed as her, but he could not sleep when she was not with him tonight. ¡®Should I go to her room and carry her over to sleep with me? ¡®No, I won¡¯t be able to exin my behavior in the morning. ¡°Then, should I go sleep in her room instead? ¡®I can sneak back into my room before she wakes up. Chapter 439 Chapter 439 Chapter 439 s, Zachary only thought about it and did not act on it. His pride stopped him from doing something that sneaky. Thus, he tossed and turned, and finally got taken away by the sandman. Meanwhile, in an apartment, Hank was fumbling around the bedside table for a pack of cigarettes. He then pulled out a stick, and was just about to light it up when the woman next to him reached over. ¡°Give me one too. ¡± Hank handed the cigarette to Jessica and helped her light it. ¡°Just smoke once in a while. ¡± Hank was not a heavy smoker and only smoked when he talked business with clients. Usually, he did not smoke unless he had something on his mind. Liberty did not like men who smoked all the time because she felt their breath stink. Jessica smoked, but she pretended to be virtuous and never smoked in front of Hank. However, Hank and her had gone all the way, and he was also preparing to divorce Liberty for her sake. Thus, Jessica did not think it was necessary to hide it anymore. Hank would find out in the future anyway. After smoking half a cigarette, she leaned on him and asked softly, ¡°Something on your mind?¡± ¡°It¡¯s nothing. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. ¡± 1/3 Jessicaughed and traced her fingers over his chest. ¡°Can¡¯t bear to divorce that fat woman in your house?¡± ¡°Of course not. I was wondering how I should write the divorce agreement. I told my parents I would give Liberty two hundred thousand, but they both felt that that was too much. When my sister found out, she also scolded me and said I was too generous to the poor. She said Liberty didn¡¯t earn a penny after marriage, so there was no need to give her so much money. ¡°I¡¯m just wondering. We¡¯re still husband and wife, and I was the one who let her down first. We should part without hard feelings, so I¡¯ll give her two hundred thousand lest she makes a fuss. If the story between us breaks out, our reputation will be ruined. ¡± Jessica put out her cigarette and said, ¡°Your parents and your sister are your family. They¡¯re the ones who want the best for you. You should consider their suggestions more. ¡± The next moment, she said coquettishly, ¡°We¡¯ve already gone this far, Hank. Shall I rent out my apartment and move into your house?¡± Hank kissed her and said catingly, ¡°Not yet. We¡¯ll live together when I finish the divorce procedure with Liberty. ¡± He also promised, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t give the house to Liberty. I¡¯ll keep the house and the car and just deposit some savings to her superficially. Jessica, I¡¯ll make sure our future life is worry¨Cfree. I¡¯ll marry you in an honorable manner. ¡± Jessica was relieved. ¡°My parents are always asking when we¡¯ll get married. They say you¡¯re too good, and others will snatch you away. ¡± She did not dare let her parents know that she was actually interfering in someone else¡¯s marriage. She lied to them that Hank was still unmarried. Hank was only thirty and had a sessful career, so her parents believed her when she said he was single. They bragged about how she had found a capable boyfriend in front of their friends and rtives. ¡°We¡¯ll get a marriage license immediately after I get divorced, and then we¡¯ll hold a grand wedding. ¡± Jessica kissed his face and said softly, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you. ¡± The two billed and cooed for a while, then Hank rolled out of bed to draft the divorce agreement. After writing it, he gave it to Jessica to read. Hank only thought of himself, so the divorce agreement was quite satisfactory to Jessica. The only thing she was unhappy about was that he wanted to keep Sonny. In her heart, Jessica hoped that Hank would give up custody of Sonny and let Liberty take him away. That way, she would not have to see that eyesore. Who wanted to take in and raise a child that was not their own? She was still young, and Hank was not too old either. They would have their own children after marriage. When they did, Sonny would be even more of an eyesore. Chapter 440 Chapter 440 Chapter 440 Jessica was upset but did not show it. After all, she was not his wife yet, so she could not say too much lest Hank resent her. Her future husband¡¯s family might also have a problem with her. Sonny was just over two years old. He was not sensible yet and could not take care of himself. If he lived under her hands, she had plenty of opportunities to deal with him, so there was no hurry. ¡°No problem. ¡± Jessica handed the divorce agreement back to Hank. ¡°I¡¯ll print two copies for you. Take them to Liberty tomorrow and have her sign them, one for each of you. On Monday, hurry and go to the City Hall to file for divorce. ¡± Hankughed. ¡°I¡¯m more impatient than you are. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not impatient. ¡± Jessicaughed as she helped Hank print the divorce papers. That night, the two people dreamed beautifully, thinking about their happy life after marriage. The night passed without a word. The next day, Serenity woke up and saw the note Zachary left on the dresser. She quickly picked up her phone and called Jasmine. ¡°Seren, I¡¯m still sleeping. ¡± Jasmine¡¯s eyes were not even open yet. She yawned while 1/3 saying, ¡°I slepttest night. ¡± Serenityughed. ¡°I figured you¡¯re not up yet. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. You wouldn¡¯t be able to read if I sent you a message, so I called you instead. Zachary left me a note saying his colleague will be waiting for you at Beans and Cream at 10 this morning. He¡¯ll be holding a red rose in his hand. ¡± ¡°I would¡¯ve forgotten about the blind date if you didn¡¯t remind me. ¡± Jasmine opened her eyes and sat up. ¡°Beans and Cream again? Okay, I got it. I won¡¯t bete. ¡± At most, she would leave early. ¡°Set your rm and go back to sleep for a little longer. I won¡¯t bother you. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re noting with me?¡± Jasmine was always apanied by Serenity every time she went on a blind date. Serenity¡¯s rxed tone turned heavy, and she said, ¡°My sister will be discussing the divorce with Hank today. I¡¯m my sister¡¯s only family, so I have to be there. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re right. You need to help Liberty out. Don¡¯t let her be bullied by the Browns. Yesterday evening, your scumbag brother¨Cinw went to our shop and wanted to pick Sonny up, saying that Sonny¡¯s grandparents missed him. ¡°I couldn¡¯t be bothered with him. When he didn¡¯t see Sonny in the shop and I kept ignoring him, he left resentfully. You were on a getaway, so I only told Liberty. ¡± Serenity sneered. ¡°They miss Sonny? If they really miss him, they wouldn¡¯t have tried to make him sick. I think he just wants to take Sonny away to ckmail my sister into making concessions or leaving without a penny to her name. ¡± Ham Hank had an affair and was caught by Liberty. He was at fault. When a divorcewsuit was filed and properties divided, he should give her more money. However, how would jerks like the Browns be willing to give money to Liberty? They just wanted to use Sonny to ckmail her into giving in. Serenity hated people like Hank the most. He neglected his child but wanted to fight for custody during the divorce, as if he would die if he lost the child. In fact, he was just using the child as a bargaining chip. If he really won custody, he would just turn around and send the child away, neglecting them again. ¡°Seren, will Sonny be in danger? Why don¡¯t you discuss it with your sister and send Sonny to a safe ce to live for a few days? Send him somewhere the Brown family can¡¯t find or won¡¯t dare to go to, lest they threaten your sister with him. ¡± Chapter 441 Chapter 441 Chapter 441 Serenity asked, ¡°Where can we send Sonny to?¡± Hank knew where Serenity lived. They did not have anyone they could depend on in their hometown either. Not to mention Liberty, even Serenity would not be at ease. Jasmine reminded Serenity. ¡°What about Elisa? You can ask Elisa for a favor. She¡¯s the Stone Group¡¯s heiress and lives in arge vi with high security. Moreover, with the Stone Group¡¯s prestige, the Browns wouldn¡¯t dare go and make a scene. ¡°They wouldn¡¯t expect Sonny to be with the Stones. Elisa likes Sonny very much too, so she¡¯ll definitely take good care of Sonny. ¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes lit up. ¡°Right! I forgot about Elisa. I¡¯ll discuss it with my sisterter. If she agrees, then I¡¯ll ask Elisa to help take care of Sonny for the time being. ¡± ¡°Elisa has already said that you can go to her if you need help. Serenity, sometimes we¡¯ll have to give in to reality. In this unfair world, it¡¯s easier for the rich and powerful to get things donepared to ordinary people like us. ¡± Jasmine was just shy of saying, ¡°Just rely on Elisa whenever you can. ¡± Serenity helplessly agreed with her friend. After the call, Serenity opened WhatsApp and saw the photo that Elisa sent her yesterday when she was at the resort. It was a childhood picture of Mrs. Stone and her sister. Serenity only took a glimpse of it yesterday because she was out all day. Looking at the photo again now, Serenity felt that Elisa¡¯s aunt was really cute as a child. She wore a small skirt and had two pigtails. Her smile was so innocent and adorable. Serenity looked at it and felt that Elisa¡¯s aunt and Sonny looked a bit simr. She thought, ¡®Do all children that age look simr?¡® Ring ring ring¡­ The repeated ringing of the phone pulled Serenity back from her doubts. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. It was a call from Liberty, so she answered it quickly. When Serenity answered the phone, her sister said with a crying voice, ¡°Seren, they took Sonny¡­¡± Liberty told her yesterday evening that Hank wanted to take Sonny back to his hometown. At that time, Liberty called Hank, and the couple argued on the phone. ¡°What? How did they take Sonny?¡± Serenity had thought about discussing whether to send Sonny to the Stones so Elisa could take care of him for a few days. Otherwise, they would have to watch Sonny 24/7 so the Browns would not have a chance to take him away. She did not expect the Browns to kidnap Sonny even before she had time to discuss it with Liberty. Liberty cried. ¡°I took Sonny to the market to buy some groceries when my inws suddenly showed up. My mother inw was ying with Sonny at first, then she carried Sonny 2/3 while he wasughing. Since she¡¯s Sonny¡¯s grandmother, I couldn¡¯t stop her from holding him. ¡°Who knew that after she carried Sonny, she quickly handed him to Chelsea¡¯s husband. He instantly took Sonny, ran to his car that was parked on the side of the road, shoved Sonny into the car, and quickly drove away. ¡°By the time I reacted and wanted to chase after him, my inws stopped me¡­¡± ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª Liberty had a mental breakdown when she thought she might not get to see her son again since her son was taken by her husband¡¯s family. ¡°Liberty, have you called the police?¡± Serenity was furious with the Browns¡® actions. They actually wanted to use Sonny to ckmail Liberty. Serenity felt sorry for her nephew and worried that her nephew would get hurt. However, she had to stay strong for her sister and could not panic now. She had to be her sister¡¯s support. She said calmly, ¡°Liberty, you should call the police first. ¡± ¡°They¡¯re Sonny¡¯s rtives. Will the police intervene?¡± Liberty and Hank were preparing for divorce, but the Browns took Sonny. Would Sonny be able toe back if they called the police? Liberty was at a loss. Chapter 442 Chapter 442 Chapter 442 Serenity said, ¡°Liberty, it doesn¡¯t matter whether the police will be of help, just call them first. ¡± ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll call the police now. ¡± ¡°What about your inws?¡± ¡°They left after Sonny was carried into the car. They probably went to find Hank. He didn¡¯te homest night. ¡± Serenity thought about it for a while and said, ¡°Liberty, you should call the police first. Zachary and I will go to Hank¡¯s hometown and Chelsea¡¯s house now. They probably took Sonny back to their hometown. ¡± Liberty and Hank were about to divorce, and the custody was not yet determined. The Browns took Sonny away without Liberty¡¯s permission, so if she called the police, the police would most likely be mediators. If none of thempromised, they would just have to wait for the court to resolve it together with the divorce proceedings. Although the Browns were also Sonny¡¯s rtives, Liberty and Serenity had taken care of Sonny since his birth. Sonny did not have a close rtionship with the Browns. If Sonny was taken to an unfamiliar ce, he would cry and make a fuss. Who knew what the Browns would do to Sonny? ¡°Liberty, did anyone see them taking Sonny away?¡± Serenity worried that if she and Zachary were not able to find Sonny when they arrived at the Reptons¡® house, the Reptons would not admit what they did and might even me Liberty for not taking good care of Sonny and losing him. ¡°Some people witnessed it, but my mother¨Cinw said I wouldn¡¯t let her visit her grandson. She missed her grandson too much, so she could only use this way to see him. When those people heard that it was a family matter, they didn¡¯t want to interfere, so I don¡¯t think they¡¯ll testify for me. ¡± ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t panic. Calm down and call the police first. Zachary and I will go to the Reptons¡± house now. After you call the police, call Hank and tell him what they did was wrong. It¡¯ll traumatize Sonny. ¡± Liberty said angrily, ¡°I called him. He said that Sonny is his son, and his parents miss their grandson. He said I don¡¯t have time to take care of Sonny since I have to work, so his parents will take care of Sonny from now on. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll call the police first. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± After the Hunt sisters ended the call, Serenity rushed out of her room. She saw Zachary, who just came out of his room, so she went up and grabbed Zachary¡¯s arm. ¡°Zachary, the Browns took Sonny away. Can you please apany me to Hank¡¯s sister¡¯s house in his hometown?¡± Grandma May and Mrs. Lane came out when they heard this. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Grandma May asked with concern. ¡°Nana, my sister took Sonny to the market to buy some groceries, but her inws took Sonny away and handed him to Hank¡¯s brother¨Cinw. I¡¯m guessing they went back to their hometown. I know where they live. ¡± Serenity was afraid that if she went there alone, she would be outnumbered and might not get Sonny back. She might even suffer a loss. Thus, Serenity wanted to bring Zachary along. When she encountered any issue, Serenity subconsciously thought of Zachary because she trusted him and grew a little dependent on him. With him around, Serenity felt that she did not have to worry about the sky falling. ¡°They¡¯re a family of scumbags!¡± Grandma May cursed at them and urged Zachary.Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Zack, you should go with Serenity to get Sonny back first. It¡¯ll be troublesome if they move Sonny to another ce. ¡± Hank¡¯s family took Sonny away before the divorce was finalized, so this was not illegal. It was just an underhanded tactic. At this time, they could only rely on themselves to find Sonny. ¡°Mrs. Lane and I will go to Bright Boulevard to apany Liberty so she won¡¯t feel lonely. You should also call Callum and your brothers to help. If they¡¯re in Wiltspoon, ask them toe so you¡¯ll have strength in numbers. ¡°Once you find out where they¡¯re hiding Sonny, let us know as soon as possible, and we¡¯ll send Liberty there. Liberty is Sonny¡¯s biological mother, so it¡¯s more appropriate for her to go and get her child back. ¡± Grandma May encountered all kinds of situations before, so she quickly calmed down and made a series of arrangements. Chapter 443 Chapter 443 Chapter 443 Zachary called Callum while he walked out. It was early in the morning, so Callum was still in dreand. The phone rang for a while before Callum answered. ¡°Zack, what¡¯s up?¡± Callum opened his eyes to look at the caller ID, then closed his eyes after answering the call. On weekends, Callum had nothing to do and would not wake up until noon. ¡°Callum, please inform everyone except Rowan to go to¡­ Serenity, which expressway do we need to take to Liberty¡¯s inws¡® house?¡± ¡°We¡¯ll need to take the XX expressway for around forty minutes. ¡± Zachary said to his cousin on the phone, ¡°You all can wait for me and Serenity at the intersection of the XX expressway. Something happened, and I need your help. ¡± Callum heard that Zachary wanted to gather all nine of the York brothers, except Rowan because he was still a minor. Callum asked with concern, ¡°Zack, what happened?¡± Why was it necessary to gather all the York brothers? ¡°Serenity¡¯s nephew was kidnapped. Her sister is going through a divorce, but it hasn¡¯t been finalized. But her brother -inw¡¯s family took her nephew away. The police can¡¯t really do anything about this, so it¡¯s up to us to find Sonny. ¡± The Yorks had a meal with Liberty and her family before, so Callum had a deep impression of Sonny. When Callum heard Sonny was taken away by Liberty¡¯s inws, he immediately sat up and got out of bed. ¡°Zack, tell Serenity not to worry. I¡¯ll notify everyone to help right away. ¡± ¡°Okay. Tell them to hurry to XX expressway. Then we¡¯ll go to Hank¡¯s hometown together. Sonny is probably taken there. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± After ending the call, Callum wanted to send a message in their family group chat and tag the York brothers. However, considering that it was still so early in the morning, everyone would still be sleeping and would not look at the messages, so he called them one by one. Since it was the weekend, the York brothers were all in Wiltspoon. When they heard that Serenity¡¯s nephew was kidnapped, they did not hesitate and went to the intersection of the XX expressway to meet Zachary and Serenity. The York brothers lived in their respective vis and were not back at the main residence, so they did not reach the intersection at the same time. However, they arrived for their rendezvous one after another. To Zachary¡¯s satisfaction, everyone still remembered to change their cars even if they were rushing. Their cars were around a hundred thousand dors, so they did not blow their cover. In fact, after they found out that Zachary concealed his identity to marry Serenity, the York brothers, like Zachary, bought an ordinary car worth around a hundred thousand dors and ced it in their garage. That way, they could use it when necessary while still going undercover. ¡°Zack, Serenity. ¡± The York brothers wound down the car windows and greeted the couple. The young couple nodded. Serenity was nervous as she was worried that Sonny would be transferred elsewhere. Zachary held her hand and said in a low voice, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. We¡¯ll find Sonny. ¡± Serenity nodded vigorously. Zachary started the car. At this time, he did not dare let Serenity drive for fear that she would crash the car. He did not inform Josh because Josh was supposed to go on a blind date with Jasmine in the morning. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. Thus, eight out of the nine York brothers rushed to Hank¡¯s hometown in an eight¨Ccar convoy. At the same time, Grandma May and Mrs. Lane went to Bright Boulevard. Before Serenity left, she gave Grandma May the key to Liberty¡¯s house. Chapter 444 Chapter 444 Chapter 444 Grandma May and Mrs. Lane arrived at Bright Boulevard and went straight to Liberty¡¯s house. As soon as they got out of the elevator, they heard loud cries which were disturbing the neighbors. A crowd gathered in front of Liberty¡¯s ce to see what was going on. ¡°Hank Brown, you b*stard! Give me back my son! Your whole family is despicable! You treat Sonny like a toy ande over to y with him whenever you please. But when you make him cry, you just leave without a word. ¡°Sonny is two years and five months old, but have you guys, as his grandparents, ever bought him a piece of clothing? You didn¡¯t even buy him a toy. Now you¡¯re saying that you miss Sonny? Even if you miss Sonny, have I ever stopped you from seeing him?¡± Liberty was held down by her inws to prevent her from beating up Hank. She struggled desperately as she cried and cursed like a mad woman. Since she fought with her husband¡¯s family before, she no longer cared how disheveled her hair was. Her voice was hoarse, and she was still desperately trying to break free from their restraint. p Chelsea pped Liberty twice. She scolded Liberty. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°Sonny is my parents¡® grandson. Since you and my brother are getting a divorce, Sonny will naturally follow us. It¡¯s our freedom to take Sonny because he¡¯s part of our family. If you cry again, I¡¯ll cut out your tongue!¡± Liberty went berserk after getting pped twice by her sister inw. She used all her strength to break free from their sp. Seeing that her parents could no longer hold Liberty back, Chelsea rushed over to help them. Grandma May and Mrs. Lane squeezed through the crowd just in time to see this scene. Grandma May¡¯s blood pressure spiked, and she rushed in without a second thought. Mrs. Lane followed. As Clive mentioned, Grandma May worked in an intelligence agency when she was young and was very influential. Although she did not do anything after retirement, she kept herself active and healthy, so she was stronger than the average person. Grandma May rushed in and kicked Chelsea, who was trying to knee Liberty in the chest. Chelsea fell to the ground. Soon after, Grandma May kicked Mr. and Mrs. Brown to the ground as well. Mrs. Lane quickly stepped forward and helped Liberty up. As soon as Liberty was free, she immediately rushed toward her sister¨Cinw like a lunatic. Before Chelsea could get up, Liberty threw herself on top of her with her entire body weight. ¡°Ouch! My ribs are about to break!¡± Chelsea cried out in pain as she was crushed by Liberty. The next moment, Liberty grabbed Chelsea¡¯s hair with one hand to pull her head up and pped her face with the other. Liberty pped Chelsea several times in one go. The two women started wrestling each other. Hank wanted to help his sister, but Grandma May said coldly, ¡± If you dare to touch Liberty again, I¡¯ll pass out on the ground right here!¡± Hank was speechless. Grandma May was old and had plenty of children and grandchildren. If she passed out in their house and med it on them, they would not be able to deny it. She might even ask them topensate her a sizable sum. ¡°Grandma May, this is our family matters. ¡± Hank looked at his sister and his wife who were fighting and said with a glum face, ¡°I hope that you¡¯ll mind your own business. ¡± Their neighbors were watching the drama, but no one intervened. Grandma May said coldly, ¡°Liberty is my granddaughter¨Cinw¡¯s sister, so she¡¯s my inw. Now that my inw is being bullied, how is it not my business? Do you think Liberty doesn¡¯t have any family? The entire York family stands with Liberty! We¡¯re her family!¡± She turned to Liberty and said, ¡°Liberty, just treat them how they treated you. I¡¯ll stand with you as long as you don¡¯t kill anyone!¡± Chapter 445 Chapter 445 Chapter 445 Mr. and Mrs. Brown could not help their daughter because Grandma May would kick them when they tried to help. The Browns were stunned that an olddy who was almost eighty years old was still so strong and vicious. Under Grandma May¡¯s protection, Liberty and Chelsea had a fierce fight. Chelsea was usually just sharp¨Ctongued. When it came to fighting, she could notpare to Liberty. Liberty¡¯s weight was an advantage in a fight. As soon as she sat on Chelsea, Chelsea could not get up. Liberty finally stopped pping Chelsea, who looked like a broken rag doll. ¡°Hank, why are you still with such a sl*t?! Divorce her immediately! Kick her out of your house! This is your house, so make her leave!¡± Chelsea had never suffered such grievance and humiliation. She was beaten violently by Liberty while many onlookers watched. At this moment, her hair was disheveled, and her face was swollen. Her whole body was in pain. ¡°Chelsea. ¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown hurriedly helped their daughter up. They were distressed when they saw their daughter¡¯s condition. Grandma May instructed Mrs. Lane. ¡°Mrs. Lane, talk to the neighbors about this family¡¯s evil deeds, lest they me us for bullying them. We¡¯re at a disadvantage in this fight. They have two men and two women on their side, while we¡¯re just three weak women. I¡¯m so old that I have to use a walking stick. They¡¯re the ones bullying us!¡± The onlookers were speechless as they thought, ¡®Grandma, you just beat up four people by yourself¡­¡® However, just as Grandma May threatened Hank earlier, she could very well pass out right then and there and me it on the Browns. If that happened, the Browns would be in big trouble. Mrs. Lane had been with Serenity for a few days and was well informed of the situation between Liberty and Hank. She was the one who came to take care of Sonny that night when Liberty went to the hotel to catch Hank and his mistress in the act. Thus, Mrs. Lane told the crowd everything she knew. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Everyone in themunity knew that Hank abused his wife because Liberty chased him with a kitchen knife down a few blocks after Hank hit her. This became big news in Bright Boulevard. After that incident, those men with the habit of domestic violence controlled their anger as they were afraid their wives would take after Liberty. Hank also cheated and was caught in the act by Liberty. Thus, everyone could understand that Liberty wanted to file for divorce since no one wanted to be married to an unfaithful husband. ¡°They were supposed to talk about their divorce, but the Browns were so despicable that they kidnapped her child! They even teamed up to bully Liberty. Don¡¯t you all think they¡¯re overboard? They said they missed their grandson, but they¡¯ve never cared for him and only raised their daughter¡¯s children. ¡°A few days ago, that woman, Sonny¡¯s biological grandmother, brought her daughter¡¯s sick son to Sonny and deliberately wanted to infect him. That kid admitted it himself. How could a grandmother be so vicious to her own grandson? ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter if they didn¡¯t want to take care of Sonny since they¡¯re not obliged to. Helping out to babysit is just a bonus. But whose grandma will purposely want to infect their grandson?¡± The crowd watched on for a while. The neighbors actually knew who Chelsea was because she was a horrid person. At this moment when they heard Mrs. Lane¡¯s exnation, everyone looked at the Browns with judgmental eyes. The Browns could not take it any longer and went over to push Mrs. Lane and close the front door. Although Mrs. Lane did not know how to fight, she was not weak either. After she was pushed by the Browns, she immediately squeezed through the gap, pushed the front door open, and went back into the house. Anyway, everyone knew the truth now. Liberty was the victim who was bullied by her inws. The fastest way to spread gossip was through these middle aged women¡¯s mouths. In less than an hour, the entire Bright Boulevard knew that Hank and his wife were getting divorced and that the Browns kidnapped Sonny. They even bullied Liberty because she was an orphan. Comm ¡°Stupid old hag! Where did youe from?! How dare you meddle in our business?!¡± Chapter 446 Chapter 446 Chapter 446 ¡°I didn¡¯t butt in. Did you see me butting in?¡± Grandma May retorted. In Grandma May¡¯s eyes, she only kicked them and did not butt in. Mrs. Brown was speechless by Grandma May¡¯s denial. ¡°I just think that you¡¯re too involved as a mother¨Cinw. Also, your daughter has her own family, yet she wants to boss her younger brother and sister¨Cinw around. She has been the one sowing discord between them, right? How did you raise your daughter? Do you have a grudge against your inws? Is that why you wanted your daughter to marry into your inw¡¯s family?¡± Mrs. Brown was speechless. Mr. Brown spoke up, ¡°We¡¯re Sonny¡¯s grandparents. We miss him, so we¡¯re just taking him home to stay with us for a while. Liberty made us look like kidnappers and even called the police!¡± After Liberty called the police, the police officers came to understand the situation. After they found out that it was a family dispute, they left after giving some advice. They could not help Liberty to find Sonny. ¡°Were you just picking Sonny up? You didn¡¯t discuss it with Liberty and took Sonny away even though he was crying. That¡¯s kidnapping! You¡¯re lucky that we¡¯re only calling you kidnappers. ¡± Mr. Brown opened his mouth but could not say a word. Mrs. Lane went to get some ice for Liberty to apply on her face. Mrs. Lane pretended not to see Chelsea¡¯s bruised and swollen face. Mrs. Brown wanted to get some ice cubes for her daughter¡¯s face too but found that there were no ice cubes left. Mrs. Lane had given them all to Liberty. The Browns realized that Grandma May was a fighter but was old, so they became cowardly as they were afraid she would pass out on the floor and me it on them. 1309W Mr. Brown cleared his throat and said, ¡°Olddy, we¡¯re also disheartened that Hank and Liberty ended up like this. I scolded my son, but they still insisted on getting a divorce. We came here today to talk about the divorce terms. Sonny is my only grandson who shares myst name, so we¡¯ll never hurt him. We were just picking him up to see him. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. ¡± What he implied was that they should not talk about Sonny and start talking about the divorce. Grandma May patted the back of Liberty¡¯s hand and said softly, ¡°Seren and Zack went to look for Sonny. Don¡¯t worry. Everything will be alright. ¡± Chapter 447 Chapter 447 Facebook Twitter WhatsApp Pinterest Chapter 447 Liberty did not have a car, so after she asked Serenity and Zachary to look for Sonny, she went to Hank to settle the score. However, Liberty was alone, and Hank¡¯s family was there, so she was outnumbered. Fortunately, Grandma May and Mrs. Lane came to help out. Just in time, Hank took out the divorce agreement he wrotest night and said, ¡°Liberty, I admit that I wronged you. I also know that you can¡¯t forgive me. N?velD(ram)a.?rg owns this content. Since the two of us are no longer in love with each other, this marriage can¡¯t go on. Let¡¯s get a divorce. ¡°This is the divorce agreement I wrote. Take a look at it. If there¡¯s no problem, we can sign it and finalize it on Monday at the City Hall. ¡± Liberty took the divorce agreement with a cold face. When she read it, she was so angry that she wanted to rip Hank to shreds. Grandma May took a look at the divorce agreement that Hank wrote. After reading it, she took a few deep breaths to control her anger. The Browns were truly despicable! Seeing Liberty¡¯s glum face, Hank said insensitively, ¡°I bought this house as a personal property before marriage. The only name written on the title deed is mine, so the house belongs to me. I bought the car too, so that belongs to me too. ¡°Although you have a job now, you¡¯ve only just started and haven¡¯t passed your probation yet, so you can¡¯t prove that you have a stable ie. I¡¯ll sacrifice a little and take over Sonny¡¯s custody. From now on, you just need to give Sonny two thousand dors a month as living expenses. ¡°Sonny is only two years old and still needs to drink form and use diapers at night. When he¡¯s three years old, he¡¯ll go to kindergarten. Tuition fees are getting more expensive every year. Although elementary school and junior high are free, he needs money for high school and college. When he grows up, I¡¯ll have to buy him a house and help him prepare a bridal gift. All of that needs money. ¡°I¡¯m taking custody of Sonny and I¡¯m only asking you to pay two thousand dors as alimony. That¡¯s a good deal for you. Since I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s father, I have no choice but to take up the burden. ¡°I have a lot of monthly expenses and don¡¯t have much savings, but I¡¯m willing to share half of it with you, which is thirty thousand dors. ¡± Liberty knew that divorced couples would be at odds with each other because no one wanted to compromise. A couple who used to share the same bed would be enemies. She did not want to be at odds with Hank, but he went too far. After taking a deep breath, Liberty tore up the divorce agreement that Hank wrote and threw the shreds of paper at him. ¡°Hank Brown! We¡¯re definitely getting a divorce, but not like this. Do you think you can just brush me off with thirty thousand dors? No way! ¡°I won¡¯t fight for your car or house, but you use your sry to pay off the mortgage after marriage. That¡¯s our joint property, so I want to bepensated with a sum of money. I have a rough idea of how much your savings is, so you better not think you can fool me with thirty thousand dors! ¡°We¡¯ve known each other for twelve years and have been married for more than three years. For Sonny¡¯s sake, I didn¡¯t want to make such a big fuss. But you took Sonny from me, and I won¡¯t tolerate it anymore! I¡¯ll fight for everything that I¡¯m supposed to get, but I won¡¯t take an extra penny from you. ¡°I paid for the renovation costs for the house, and I told you a long time ago that you have to return it to me if you want a divorce. ¡± Hank said shamelessly, ¡°I also told you that you voluntarily paid for the renovation costs, so I won¡¯t give you a penny for that. If you think that you¡¯ve suffered a loss, you can take away the tiles!¡± Liberty red at him coldly and said, ¡°Fine! If you won¡¯t pay me back, I¡¯ll use my own method to get back my renovation costs. ¡°You said you¡¯re sacrificing yourself by asking for Sonny¡¯s custody. Since you think that way, you can give me Sonny¡¯s custody. I¡¯m not afraid of sacrificing myself for my son!¡± ¡°No way! Sonny is my grandson, so he must stay with us!¡± Mr. Brown insisted. Mrs. Brown echoed, ¡°Don¡¯t you dare think that you can get Sonny! He¡¯s my grandson! He¡¯s a Brown!¡± Chelsea shouted, ¡°Hank, this is your house! Since you¡¯re getting a divorce, kick her out now! You can¡¯t let her live here anymore. If she doesn¡¯t move out, make her pay the rent. ¡± Chelsea thought, ¡®Fat b*tch! How dare you beat me up like this?! I won¡¯t let you get your way!¡® ¡®Sonny will live with my parents in the future, and they¡¯re staying in my house. This means Sonny will be too. Since Liberty treated me like that, I¡¯ll punish Sonny for it and make Liberty kneel and beg me for forgiveness. ¡® Chapter 448 Chapter 448 Chapter 448 Liberty sneered, ¡°I¡¯ll move out by myself once I get back the renovation costs! I don¡¯t need you to kick me out. ¡± ¡°You won¡¯t get a penny back!¡± Chelsea shouted and felt a pain on her face. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Liberty applied ice on her face, but Chelsea did not, and it hurt like hell. Chelsea felt a burning pain on both sides of her face. She did not need to look in the mirror to know that her face was as swollen as a pig¡¯s head at the moment. She thought, ¡®Liberty! I won¡¯t let you get your way!¡® ¡°See you in court. ¡± Grandma May said, ¡°Your family is being unfair to Liberty. Since you all can¡¯t agree on the terms, there¡¯s no need to talk anymore. Liberty, you should file for divorce and confront them in court. ¡± Hank threatened her. ¡°Liberty, you won¡¯t get the slightest benefit if you file awsuit. Your sister and these people can¡¯t help you. If you push us to a corner, it¡¯ll be difficult for you to see Sonny in the future. ¡± If Liberty filed for divorce and divided their property, Hank would hide Sonny so that Liberty could never see her son again. Liberty red at him and ignored his threat. She wanted to sue him, get half of their property, and fight for her son¡¯s custody. She had to fight for what she deserved and would not let Hank and Jessica take advantage of her. While Liberty and Hank were arguing about the divorce terms, Serenity and the York brothers rushed over to the Reptons¡® house. Sonny was taken away by George Repton, so Serenity guessed that he must have brought Sonny back to his home instead of the Browns¡® residence. The Reptons¡® house was a self¨Cbuilt three¨Cstory building with a luxurious interior and exterior. It was particrly conspicuous in the small town they lived in. George just brought Sonny back not long ago. He thought that even if Liberty and Serenity knew that Sonny was here, they would not be able toe and take Sonny back. He thought the Browns could stop the Hunt sisters. Thus, after he brought Sonny back, he let Sonny y with his youngest son. In the meantime, he hid in the room to y some video games while his wife was not at home. Sonny was suddenly taken away from his mother, so the little guy cried the entire journey. He was left in the hall on the first floor by his uncle. It was an unfamiliar environment, and he did not see his mother, so Sonny was frightened and cried even more. He cried and said, ¡± Mommy! I want mommy¡­¡± George¡¯s parents were busy in the kitchen. They ignored. Sonny and let him cry until his voice was hoarse. Lucas watched as Sonny cried and suddenly walked over to hit Sonny. Sonny was sad, but his cousin hit him, so he pushed Lucas away angrily. Lucas did not stand firm and fell to the ground, then immediately burst into tears. Lucas¡¯s older brother, sister, and grandparents came out when they heard Lucas crying. ¡°Sonny hit me,¡± Lucasined. Matthew did not question his younger brother. He just stepped forward and kicked Sonny, who got booted one meter away. He then lifted Sonny, and pped him repeatedly while cursing the little boy. Serenity heard Sonny¡¯s cries when she got out of the car and rushed in to see Sonny being beaten. Chapter 449 Chapter 449 Chapter 449 Serenity rushed over and took Sonny away from Matthew. She freed one of her hands and pped Matthew in the face. Matthew was around ten years old, but because of his height, he looked like a fifteen¨Cyear¨Cold. After getting pped by Serenity out of the blue, Matthew was not afraid either. Instead, he was infuriated and rushed over to fight Serenity like a madman. However, before he could touch Serenity, he was lifted from the ground. Before Matthew could react, his whole body was lifted, and his face was pinned against the wall. His hands were folded behind his back. He wanted to struggle, but those tworge hands were like metal pincers that were mping him down. Matthew¡¯s mped wrists felt increasingly painful. ¡°Let go of me!¡± Matthew yelled, ¡°Let me go! I¡¯ll fight you one¨Con¨Cone if you dare!¡± When Emma Repton saw her brother being pushed against the wall, she wanted to help him, but she was blocked by a wall of people. Upon closer look, she realized that these tall men had broken into her house at some point. They were also very good¨Clooking. Although she was only twelve years old, she knew how to appreciate handsome men. Emma and her ssmates would ?? usually discuss which male celebrity was better looking. Emma looked at the wall of people in front of her, dumbfounded. Did these peoplee out from the TV? They were such dreamboats! ¡°Who are you people?¡± George¡¯s parents, who ignored Sonny just now, were startled when they saw this many people. Serenity ignored them and looked down at Sonny. Sonny¡¯s face was red and swollen from Matthew¡¯s beating. There were bright red fingerprint marks on his face and blood on the corners of his mouth. Those big and innocent eyes that usually glowed were filled with fear at this moment. Sonny opened his mouth to cry, but he could not make a sound. Perhaps it was because he was frightened. Serenity¡¯s tears welled up at once. With a pale face and shaking hands, Serenity kept patting Sonny¡¯s back and hugged him tightly. She cried, ¡°Sonny, it¡¯s Aunt Seren. I¡¯m right here. Sonny, make a sound and cry it out. Don¡¯t scare me¡­¡± Sonny looked at Serenity and focused his gaze on her. When it was clear that the person holding him was Serenity, he cried. out loud. ¡°Ant Swer-¡± He hugged Serenity¡¯s neck tightly with both hands and cried loudly. Since he cried for too long earlier, his voice was hoarse and dry as he howled. Serenity was heartbroken when she heard this and wanted to kill Matthew Repton a thousand times over. Matthew and Sonny were cousins, so how could Matthew treat Sonny like this? A ten¨Cyear¨Cold child being so cruel meant that he was rotten to the core. ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t be scared. Aunt Seren is here. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Don¡¯t be scared¡­¡± Serenity coaxed Sonny while she cried. She could not even imagine what would happen to Sonny if she arrived a minuteter. How could Hank stillpete with Liberty for Sonny¡¯s custody? Did he know how his family treated Sonny? Sonny suddenly stopped crying. When Serenity looked at him, she saw that Sonny had fainted. His soft body went limp in her arms. Serenity was so frightened that her heart was about to jump out of her chest. ¡°Sonny!¡± Serenity shook Sonny¡¯s small body. She carried Sonny and immediately turned to rush out of the house. Chapter 450 Chapter 450 Capter 450 Zachary said, ¡°Callum, I¡¯ll leave this ce to you. Make sure he pays the price for how he treated Sonny. ¡± Zachary threw Matthew aside. Matthew fell to the ground but did not get up immediately. He even tried to kick Zachary. Zachary did not even have to look to evade that kick. He stepped on Matthew¡¯s foot, which made him howl in pain. ncing at Matthew, Zachary left these people behind and hurried out. Serenity had already put Sonny in the child safety seat and was about to drive. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll drive. ¡± Zachary quickly pulled Serenity out of the driver¡¯s seat and stuffed her into the back seat of the car so that he could drive. Serenity did not argue with him. She picked up the unconscious Sonny and wondered if the little boy fainted due to shock or pain. ¡°Go to the nearest hospital. ¡± Without needing her reminder, Zachary would head to the nearest hospital too. The car quickly drove away. Serenity hugged Sonny tightly as her distressed tears fell on him. Sonny was such an adorable kid, yet he had to suffer all this. Along the way, the couple did not speak since Serenity was not in the mood to. She was afraid of what would happen to Sonny. Serenity would not let the Reptons get away with it if anything bad happened to Sonny. Soon, they arrived at the hospital. As soon as Zachary parked the car, Serenity rushed out with Sonny in his arms. ¡°Doctor! I need a doctor!¡± Serenity ran wildly while shouting for a doctor, attracting countless people¡¯s attention. The doctors and nurses were rmed by Serenity¡¯s cries. Serenity did not care what specialty the doctors were in. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. She grabbed one at random and quickly begged him. ¡°Doctor, please save my nephew! He was abused and he fainted. ¡± The doctor quickly took Sonny from her and ran to the emergency room. Other doctors and nurses followed. A nurse reminded Serenity. ¡°Since the child was abused, you should hurry and call the police. ¡± The nurse then hurried away. Serenity followed them. After Sonny was taken into the emergency room, she took out her phone, wiped away her tears, and called the police. When she spoke, her voice choked up, and the emergency operator gentlyforted her and told her to calm down. At that moment, Zachary came over and took the phone from her hand. He exined the situation to the operator clearly. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± Serenity turned around and fell into his arms. She covered her face as tears streamed down uncontrobly. She had not cried like this for a long time. After the death of her parents, Serenity and Liberty had gone through life¡¯s ups and downs, so they had long learned to be strong. However, at this moment, Serenity could not control her emotions any longer. She thought of Sonny¡¯s red and swollen face that was marked with fingerprints with blood tainting the corners of his mouth. She thought of how Sonny was so afraid that he could not make a sound. When Sonny fell limp in her arms, Serenity felt scared and powerless. Zachary hugged her tightly. ¡°Sonny will be fine. ¡± Zacharyforted her as well as himself. ¡°If anything happens to Sonny, I¡¯ll make sure their whole family pays the price!¡± Serenity cried as she said such harsh words. ¡°Sonny will be fine. We¡¯ll hand this case to the police. I told Callum to return the favor. ¡± ¡°How could they treat Sonny like this? That b*stard is Sonny¡¯s cousin. Hank gives his parents a living allowance every month, and Liberty said that it¡¯s no less than five thousand dors. They use it on Chelsea¡¯s household, so Hank is practically supporting his sister¡¯s family. Look at how his nephew treats his own son!¡± Zachary said in a deep voice, ¡°Parents are a child¡¯s first teachers. Chelsea¡¯s character had subtly influenced her children, which made them rotten to the core. ¡± Chapter 451 Chapter 451 Chapter 451 Not long after, the door to the emergency room opened, and Sonny was pushed out. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Serenity and Zachary quickly stepped forward. She anxiously asked the doctor, ¡°Doctor, how is my nephew?¡± ¡°The soft tissue on the child¡®s face was injured, and one side of his thigh was bruised. Was he kicked? There are footprints on his clothes. Other than that, there¡®s no other injury. He¡®s unconscious because of the shock. ¡± The nurse was applying ice to Sonny¡®s face. ¡°Who¡®s so cruel to do such things to a small baby?¡± The doctors felt distressed about what happened to Sonny. Such a cute little baby was beaten until both sides of his face were ck and blue. This showed how ruthless the perpetrator was for him to be so vicious to a small kid. The abuser was simply mentally sick. ¡°His cousin. ¡± The doctor was speechless and thought, ¡®What kind of grudge would someone have to pound their little cousin up this brutally? ¡°I took pictures of the child¡®s injury earlier. You can keep them as evidence for the police. That way, you can sue the perpetrator. ¡± Serenity quickly thanked the doctor and took out her phone to add the doctor¡®s contact details. After the doctor sent her the photos, she immediately forwarded them to Liberty. ¡°¡®The child¡®s injuries aren¡®t that serious, but he¡¯s seriously traumatized, so you should spend more time with him. He¡®s still young, so he¡®ll slowly forget about this trauma as long as someone¡®s there for him. ¡± Serenity nodded repeatedly ¡°Thank you, doctor. ¡± Zachary thanked the doctor again. ¡°You¡®re wee. ¡± After the doctor left, the couple followed the nurses into a ward. Sonny was carried to a bed, and one of the nurses said, ¡°He¡®ll wake up soon and when he does, try to comfort him because he fainted from shock. His face is still swollen, so you should continue to apply ice to his face for the next twenty four hours. After that, you can put a hotpress. ¡± ¡°Okay, thank you. ¡± Serenity thanked the nurse profusely. She sat on the bed and took over the nurse¡¯s job of applying ice to Sonny¡¯s face. After a few minutes, Sonny woke up. Sonny wanted to cry when he opened his eyes, but after he saw Serenity, he held back his tears. He then crawled over to Serenity and nestled in her arms. ¡°Sonny, don¡®t be scared. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. Aunt Seren is here. ¡± Serenity hugged him with one arm and held the ice pack with the other hand as she coaxed him softly, ¡°Sonny, let me apply this to your face so you can get better soon. ¡± Sonny¡®s little hands were sping onto Serenity¡¯s clothes. After Serenity cajoled him, he was finally willing to lift his face so that Serenity could put ice on it. ¡°Zack, Serenity. ¡± Callum and the others came. ¡°How¡®s Sonny?¡± Callum asked with concern. ¡°The soft tissue on his face is damaged. The doctor said to use ice cubes first, then a hotpress after twenty¨Cfour hours. One side of his thigh was also bruised from the kick. The main thing is that he fainted from shock. ¡± The physical injuries could heal easily. Chapter 452 Chapter 452 Chapter 452 On the other hand, Sonny¡¯s mental trauma would take a long time to heal. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°How¡®s that little b*stard?¡± Zachary asked in a low voice. ¡°I didn¡®t hit him. Instead, I forced his dad to p his face until the corners of his mouth were bleeding. We also trashed their house, then tliey threatened to call the police. I told them to go ahead and call the police because if anything happens to Sonny, the police can just arrest that little b*stard. ¡°Once they heard that, they didn¡®t dare make a sound. ¡± Callum saw that Matthew was still a child, so if he hit Matthew, the Reptons would sue him in turn. That was not what they wanted. Fortunately, the York brothers outnumbered the Reptons. In order to protect himself, George ruthlessly taught his eldest son a lesson and pped Matthew until the little perpetrator¡®s face was red and swollen with his mouth bleeding George was merciless when he hit his son. He even hit him with a belt. He med Matthew for causing heavy losses to him because Matthew got caught by Serenity and the York brothers when he hit Sonny. That was why the York brothers trashed their house. George was afraid that something happened to Sonny. He did not expect such a thing to happen and did not know how to exin it to his inws. Thus, in a fit of anger, George beat up Matthew cruelly. George¡®s parents cried that Matthew was just a child and that the York brothers were heartless as to make George hit his own son. Callum retorted. ¡°Isn¡®t Sonny a child as well? Sonny is so young, yet he abused Sonny like that. ¡± George¡¯s parents were speechless. When their own kin made a mistake, the Reptons defended that Matthew was just a child, so the York brothers should not be harsh on him. The Reptons added that it was normal for children to get into small fights. Was that a small fight? Sonny was abused until hended in a hospital. ¡°Zack, when we trashed their house, we found that they had surveince cameras installed. I watched the footage and found the whole process of Sonny¡¯s beating recorded. I retrieved the hard drive of their surveince system and kept it in my car. ¡± . Zachary said in a deep voice, ¡°We called the police too. When the police arrive, let the officers watch the footage. ¡± Callum agreed. Sonny¡¯s abuser was also a minor, so the police might not be able to arrest Matthew. However, Chelsea and George couldpensate them and apologize. They would also have to promise that they would be strict with Matthew. This could also serve as a warning. ¡°Stay here. I¡®ll go out and make a call. ¡± Callum nodded. Zachary left the ward, walked to a secluded corner, and called Josh. At this moment, Josh was riding his newly bought bicycle while he gently held a rose between his teeth. As soon as Josh arrived at the entrance of Beans and Cream, he received Zachary¡®s call. Thinking that his friend was concerned about the progress of his blind date, Josh stopped riding and propped his slender legs on the ground to support the bicycle. He then removed the rose from his mouth and answered the call from his friend¨Ccum¨Cboss. Josh thought Zachary would ask him about the evidence of Hank¡®s transfer of property. As soon as the call was connected, Josh said, ¡°Zachary, I¡®ll sort out the evidence after my blind date. I¡®ll print it out and send it to youter. ¡°You don¡®t need it now since it¡®s the weekend, right?¡± The City Hall was closed on weekends. ¡°You can send me that evidenceter. Can you help me investigate where Hank¡®s sister and brother¨Cinw work? Also, suppress Waltham Electronics and send a message to their boss saying that if they want to keep theirpany, they just need to get rid of Hank and that Jessica woman. ¡°Let the word out that if anypany dares hire Hank and his mistress, they¡®ll be York Corporation¡®s enemies. I don¡®t care what method you use, get Hank¡®s sister and brother¨Cinw fired as well!¡± Zachary wanted to wait for Liberty and Hank to get divorced before he made Hank lose everything However, he did not want to wait any longer since Sonny was bullied. Even if his true identity would be revealed in the end, he wanted the Browns to end up with nothing. Whoever dared touch his nephew would be courting death! Since death was foreign to them, Zachary would teach them what it means. . Chapter 453 Chapter 453 Chapter 453 Josh figured something big must have happened because Zachary spoke with gritted teeth and sounded infuriated. ¡°The Browns took Sonny, and when we found Sonny, he was being abused by Hank¡¯s nephew. Sonny is now in the hospital. His face is swollen, and his facial soft tissues are damaged. He was also in shock. ¡± Josh cursed. ¡°What the f*ck! How could scumbags like the Browns still exist? They¡®re a disgrace to all mankind! ¡°How¡®s Sonny?¡± Josh asked with concern. ¡°His physical wounds will heal in a few days, but his mental trauma will take a long time to heal. ¡± ¡°Have you taught that demon who abused Sonny a lesson? Do you need me to bring some people over and beat him up? He¡®s simply inhuman to be so cruel to such a small kid. ¡± Zachary was silent for a while and said, ¡°He¡¯s a ten¨Cyear¨Cold boy. We called the police, but at his age, he¡®ll just be reprimanded. His parents will be ordered to discipline him andpensate us, but he won¡®t go to jail. ¡°But his father beat him up until his face was swollen. ¡± Letting George hit Matthew was merely a father teaching his son a lesson and had nothing to do with them. ¡°F*ck! Even a ten¨Cyear¨Cold could be so cruel?! He¡®ll certainly end up in prison in the future. ¡°Zachary, don¡®t worry. I¡®ll handle this. I¡®ll get my people to act now and make sure they end up with nothing!¡± Zachary said apologetically, ¡°I hope this doesn¡®t affect your mood for your blind date. ¡± ¡°Ms. Sox is Serenity¡®s best friend. If I make a bad impression this time, I¡®ll get more opportunities to meet her again. If we¡®re fated to be together, then so be it. But if we¡®re not, it¡®ll be useless even if you bind us together. ¡± Although Josh looked forward to the blind date with Jasmine, he was quite open¨Cminded. He would let nature take its course. ¡°The police officers are here, so I¡¯ll head back to the ward. ¡± ¡°Okay. Let me know if you need me. You know me, I¡®m a knight in shining armor who will wipe out all injustice in this world!¡± Zachary was in a bad mood at the moment, but when he heard Josh¡®s self¨Cpromation, he could not help butugh. ¡°Isn¡®t it because you have a strong appetite for gossip?¡± Josh replied, ¡°Well¡­ That¡®s true too. ¡± ¡°Go on with your blind date. ¡± Zachary hung up the phone. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Josh was not in a hurry to enter the cafe and called his cousin, Julian Bucham, for help. They first had to find out the Brownis¡® jobs and sources of ie before they could cut them off. That way, the Browns would lose everything. Suppressing Waltham Electronics was York Corporation¡®s internal strategy, so Josh did not tell his cousin about it. Julian Bucham had long been ustomed to Josh asking him for help from time to time. That was one way Julian could pry into Zachary¡®s private affairs. It was quite a good trade¨Coff since only a few knew of Zachary York¡®s private affairs. After asking Julian for help, Josh informed his subordinates to start suppressing Waltham Electronics Josh entered the cafe with the rose in his mouth once he finished making arrangements. Jasmine arrived earlier than Josh and was sitting at a table by the window. Thus, she saw Josh on the phone just now. This also meant she saw him biting the rose while riding his bike. Jasmine thought, ¡®Is he a dog? Why is he holding things with his mouth?¡® When Josh came in, Jasmine stood up and waved to him. Josh saw Jasmine beckoning to him and thought, ¡®Damn it! I¡®m actuallyte!¡± He hurriedly walked over with the rose. Chapter 454 Chapter 454 Chapter 454 Jasmine did not put on makeup or dress up for the date. She looked the same as usual. Actually, she usually had light makeup on, but at that moment, she was barefaced. ¡°Ms. Sox, I¡®m sorry to keep you waiting. ¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°I didn¡®t wait long, Mr. Bucham. Please take a seat. ¡± Josh sat down opposite Jasmine and handed the rose to her, but Jasmine did not take it from him. ¡°Mr. Bucham, this flower came from your mouth¡­¡± She did not need to say more. Josh took the hint and replied, ¡°Next time, I¡®ll buy a bouquet for you and hold it with my hands. I won¡®t bite it again. ¡± ¡°Is your mouth so big that you can bite a bouquet of flowers?¡± Josh replied, ¡°No¡­¡± He threw the rose that he had bitten into the trash can under the table. Seeing that Jasmine had already ordered her coffee, Josh beckoned to the waitress and asked for a cup of coffee. The waitress brought him his coffee and lingered. Josh smiled and said to the waitress, ¡°I¡®m on a blind date. ¡± The waitress blushed and wanted to say something, but she remembered what her boss told her and said shyly, ¡°I didn¡®t mean anything. ¡± She just wanted to confirm whether this man was Josh Bucham. The waitress quickly walked away. Josh touched his face. ¡°It¡®s quite a burden that my parents gave me such a good face. ¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°You¡®re indeed very good¨Clooking, probably one of the best¨Clooking men I¡¯ve ever seen. ¡± ¡°Who else is better looking than me?¡± ¡°Your colleague, Zachary. ¡± Josh suddenly said bitterly, ¡°Don¡®tpare me with him. That¡®ll just lower my self-esteem. ¡°Ms. Sox, you don¡®t have feelings for him, right?¡± Jasmine almost spat out a mouthful of coffee. She coughed a few times and hurriedly said,¡± Mr. Bucham, I don¡®t have any feelings for your colleague. He¡®s my best friend¡¯s husband, so he¡®s off¨Climits. Besides, your colleague¡®s stony face isn¡®t my type. ¡± She was not as patient as Serenity to be able to get along with Zachary. Besides, even Serenity said that Zachary was too cold at times.N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°Ms. Sox, I was just asking mainly because my colleague looks like a Greek god, so many girls swoon over him. If he wasn¡¯t cold, he would have so many admirers clinging to him like bubblegum. ¡± Jasmine did not ask much about Zachary. It was normal for such a handsome man like Zachary to have women adoring him. Jasmine could tell that Zachary was warming up to Serenity and treating Serenity better. Thus, she was not at all worried that another woman would snatch Zachary away from Serenity. ¡°Mr. Bucham, have you ever been in a rtionship?¡± ¡°No, I¡®m as pure as a nk sheet of paper. ¡± Josh was telling the truth. He had never been in a formal rtionship and only had a crush on a girl in his ss when he was young. That was more than a decade ago, so it was not worth mentioning He did not even remember what the girl looked like now. ¡°I heard from your colleague that you¡®re very busy at work?¡± ¡°Yeah. I¡®ve been so busy with work that I don¡®t have time to meet young women like you, Ms. Sox. But I still have many admirers. ¡± Chapter 455 Chapter 455 Chapter 455 Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°If you don¡®t have any admirers, I¡®ll think there¡¯s something wrong with you. ¡± Josh said, ¡°I¡®m absolutely healthy in every way!¡± ¡°Mr. Bucham, you look healthy on the surface. ¡± Josh opened his mouth but did not know how to answer her. He could not possibly say that she could give him a go to see if he was healthy, right? It was inappropriate to flirt with someone like this on a blind date, so Josh decided to shut his mouth. Josh, who had always been articte, was suddenly speechless when he was with Jasmine. He thought, ¡®Thisdy who made her name by passing out at a banquet is really something! ¨C ¨C ¨C Grandma May, Mrs. Lane, and Liberty rushed to the hospital as soon as they heard what happened. The police finished taking down the statements and left. Chelsea, George, and Matthew were summoned to the police station. That was when Chelsea found out that her eldest son had caused such big trouble. Chelsea did not dare to tell her brother but told her parents secretly. However, when Mrs. Brown heard that her eldest grandson had beaten up her youngest grandson, who waster admitted to the hospital, she cried and scolded Chelsea. That was how Hank found out. After Liberty rushed to the hospital, Hank hurried to the hospital with his parents as well. As for Chelsea, she did not dare go to the hospital with them for fear of being beaten to death by the Hunt sisters. Chelsea was already beaten by Liberty earlier. Besides, Chelsea and her husband had to report to the police station with their eldest son. ¡°Sonny. ¡± Liberty stumbled into the ward. When she saw her son in her sister¡¯s arins, she rushed forward. ¡°Sonny!¡± She hugged her son. Seeing the bruises on her son¡®s face, Liberty reached out and touched him gently with shaking hands. Her tears streamed down her cheeks non¨Cstop. ¡°Mommy!¡± Sonny recognized his mother and cried in a hoarse voice. He then hugged Liberty¡¯s neck tightly and cried. ¡°Matthew hit me¡­ Mommy, Matthew hit me¡­¡± ¡°Sonny. ¡± ¡°Mommy, I want to go home. I don¡®t want to stay at Ant Chelsea¡¯s house. Matthew and Lucas will hit me¡­¡± Sonny began to cry to be brought home. Liberty coaxed him while crying, ¡°Mommy will bring Sonny home. Mommy came here to bring you home. You don¡®t need to go to Aunt Chelsea¡®s house again. If they dare hit you again, Mommy will fight them!¡± Sonny¡®s condition improved significantly with the comfort of his mother and Aunt Serenity. He was no longer crying, but he refused to part with his mother even for a moment because he was afraid that Uncle George would take him to Aunt Chelsea¡®s house again. Then, Lucas and Matthew would beat him up. The little boy was terrified. ¡°What did the doctor say?¡± After soothing her son, Liberty wiped away her tears and asked her sister with a choked¨Cup voice. Fortunately, Liberty had a younger sister, who had nice inws. Otherwise, Liberty would not know what to do. ¡°There are wounds on his face and one side of his thigh. We need to put ice on his face to reduce the swelling. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. The bruise on his thigh will get better in a few days after applying the medicated ointment daily. What¡®s more critical is his mental trauma. ¡°Matthew is a devil! Sonny is his cousin, yet he beat Sonny up so viciously. ¡± Chapter 456 Chapter 456 Chapter 456 Liberty said, ¡°How could Matthew be a good kid if he has a mother like Chelsea?¡± Serenity said coldly, ¡°Liberty, we¡®ve reported this to the police. Although we can¡®t make Matthew go to jail, we can ask Chelsea and her husband topensate us. No matter who tries to intercede or apologize, don¡®t ept it and insist on getting thepensation. ¡± Liberty said fiercely, ¡°How else can we make them pay in addition to thepensation? He beat up my son! Seren, did you break his hands when you saw him?¡± ¡°Callum and the rest forced George to teach his son a lesson. George beat Matthew to a pulp and pped him with a belt. Callum said that Matthew was covered in wounds and looked quite wretched after the beating ¡°They also trashed the Reptons¡® house. ¡± Liberty said furiously, ¡°I really want to kill that monster. ¡± Serenity thought the same. However, they had to be rational. They did not touch Matthew but only let George teach Matthew a lesson as a father. After going through so much, Serenity understood Zachary¡®s way of doing things. No matter how angry he was, Zachary would not break thew. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. After thinking about it, Serenity thought that Zachary¡®s way of dealing with things waspletely reasonable. At least, he would not risk himself just to get his revenge. This time, they were truly indebted to Zachary and the York brothers. Serenity thought she could spend the rest of her life with a man like Zachary. She would have a good talk with Zachary once Liberty¡®s affairs were settled. They needed to talk about their future. ¡°Sonny¡± ¡°Sonny!¡± Hank brought his parents to the hospital. They asked the doctors and nurses to find out which ward Sonny was in. With one nce from Zachary, his brothers formed a human wall. They blocked the door and prevented Hank¡®s family from entering the ward. ¡°Zachary, get out of the way! I want to see my son! Sonny is my son!¡± Hank wanted to fight for his son¡®s custody but never thought that his son would get hurt. Sonny was his biological son, so how could hey his hands on Sonny? Emma told Chelsea over the phone that Sonny and Lucas got into a fight. Sonny hit Lucas first, so Matthew hit Sonny back. However, Matthew hit Sonny a little too hard. Chelsea said that Matthew did not know how to control his strength. After all, he was only ten years old. Knowing that Sonny was beaten and admitted to the hospital, Hank was mad at his brother¨Cin w for not taking good care of Sonny. Hank was heartbroken and rushed over with his parents. However, Zachary blocked their way and prevented them from entering the ward to see Sonny. ¡°Sonny¡­ Get out of my way! I want to see my grandson! My poor grandson¡­¡± Mrs. Brown wailed as she tried to push the York brothers away. Her wails made it seem like she was devastated, but there were no tears in her eyes. The person who hit Sonny was the grandson she had raised. Mrs. Brown could not decide whether she should side with Matthew or Sonny, so she thought she should see how badly Sonny was injured first. Zachary said coldly, ¡°Sonny is your biological son. If you really feel sorry for your son, you shouldn¡®t have done what you did today. Don¡®t you know your family¡®s character by now? ¡°You let them take Sonny away. Have you ever thought about how much Sonny would suffer with them? ¡°Although you¡®re going through a divorce, you can sit down with Liberty and talk about it. If you can¡®te to an agreement, just file awsuit. Using Sonny as a bargaining chip was a dirty move!¡± Hank came to realize how wrong he was. If Sonny were to have a mishap¡­ ¡°Zachary, let me go in and see Sonny first, okay? This matter is between Liberty and I, so we¡®ll handle it ourselves. I just want to see Sonny now. Is he okay?¡± Zachary said again in his icy voice, ¡°Sonny¡®s emotionally unstable, so you can¡®t go in and see him. ¡± Liberty¡¯s angry voice was heard. ¡°Zachary, let him in. I want him to take a good look at how the family he supports treats his own son. ¡± Chapter 457 Chapter 457 Chapter 457 Zachary was silent and let his brothers make way for Hank. Hank immediately took his parents into the ward. Liberty hugged Sonny, removed the ice pack, and let Hank take a look at Sonny¡®s face. Sonny¡®s face was still red and swollen even after having applied ice for some time now. A child¡®s skin was tender, so it would not heal so soon after being beaten, especially when Matthew pounded him so cruelly. Seeing his son¡®s swollen small face and fearful eyes that used to be clear and bright, Hank was so distressed that he cursed Matthew. Hank had rarely spent time with his son, but he was heartbroken at the sight of this. ¡°How could Matthew do this?! I really wasted my time raising him. ¡± Mrs. Brown wanted to touch Sonny¡®s face, but Sonny was so frightened that he immediately turned around and buried his head in his mother¡®s arms. He clutched his mother¡®s shirt tightly with both hands and screamed in fear. ¡°Mommy! Mommy!¡± Liberty pped away her mother¨Cinw¡®s hand and said coldly, ¡°Sonny is afraid of you, so don¡®t touch him. ¡± ¡°Matthew, that brat! I¡®ll go back and teach him a lesson! I didn¡®t raise him all these years to beat up my grandson!¡± Mr. Brown felt sorry for this grandson of his and was furious. Mr. and Mrs. Brown helped their daughter to care for her three children for so many years. Their daughter persuaded them to stay with her since they refused to move to the city with their son and that she lived closer to them. Chelsea made it seem like she was apanying them. In fact, she just wanted her parents to take care of her children. Chelsea¡®s inws did not help babysit because they made it clear that the children were Chelsea and her husband¡®s responsibility. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. Mr. and Mrs. Brown took care of their three grandchildren with all their hearts. They contributed their effort and even money from the living expenses that Hank gave them. As a result, the grandson they raised abused their paternal grandson. Mr. Brown suddenly felt that Matthew was an ingrate. Afterforting Sonny, Liberty asked her inws, ¡°Are you all satisfied now that Sonny is like this? You haven¡®t helped to take care of Sonny since he was born. When you took him away, you didn¡®t even bother to take care of him. Do you think he¡®s a kitten or a puppy? Even a pet would have to be taken care of to survive. ¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were afraid to speak. It took a while before Hank said, ¡°This¡­ This is an ident. None of us wanted such a thing to happen. My niece said that Sonny hit Lucas first. That¡®s why Matthew hit him back. ¡± Liberty suddenly got up and kicked Hank. She cursed at him. ¡°Do you believe what she said? Sonny never hits anyone. Lucas must¡®ve hit Sonny first, and Sonny fought back. Then Lucas pretended to cry and asked Matthew to help him fight Sonny. ¡± Liberty knew the characters of Chelsea¡¯s three children. This was also why she firmly rejected Hank¡®s request to help Chelsea take care of her children. When Lucas came to her house, he bullied Sonny and stole Sonny¡®s toys. Thus, if Lucas was in his own home, he would be more unruly and bully Sonny even more. Hank was kicked by Liberty, but he did not dare fight back because Liberty had backup standing right outside. He knew that Zachary had many brothers because they shared a meal once. At that time, Hank and Kevin were chatting happily. Hank did not expect to see Zachary¡®s brothers again on such an asion, ¡°Sonny¡­ Will youe to Daddy?¡± Hank stopped defending his nephew and wanted to hug his son. Chapter 458 Chapter 458 Chapter 458 Sonny did not want Hank to touch him and firmly grabbed onto Liberty¡®s clothes. Liberty hugged Sonny and avoided Hank¡®s outstretched hands. ¡°Hank, if you still feel sorry for your son, please take your parents and leave now! I don¡®t expect you to stand up for Sonny, but don¡®t scare him anymore. He¡®s frightened enough¡­¡± Liberty choked up again. Hank looked at his son. Mrs. Brown wanted to say something but was held down by her husband. She looked at her husband and saw that his face was gloomy, so she shut her mouth. After a long time, Hank said, ¡°We¡®ll go back then. Liberty, take good care of Sonny. I promise that I won¡®t take Sonny away again before his custody is decided. ¡± Even if Hank took Sonny, he had no time to take care of his son. He could not rest assured even if he handed Sonny over to his parents either, not unless his parents moved in with him. However, Jessica said she did not wish to live with her inws in the future. Although Hank and Liberty did not agree on the divorce terms, they could continue to negotiate while Liberty filed for divorce. Hank wanted to divorce Liberty as soon as possible and did not want to drag it out further. Hank left with his parents. After leaving the hospital, Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Hank, are you giving up on Sonny so easily?¡± ¡°Mom, Sonny is emotionally unstable and frightened now. He was raised by Liberty and Serenity, so he¡®s closer to them. Let¡®s leave him in their care for the time being. It¡®ll be good for his recovery. ¡°This doesn¡®t mean that I¡®ll give up on Sonny¡®s custody. ¡± Hank fastened his seat belt. ¡°Mom, after my divorce, you and Dad should move back into your house. Then you guys can take care of Sonny. I¡®ll give you a few thousand dors extra as your monthly living expenses. ¡°Matthew went overboard this time, and I don¡®t want Sonny to live in Chelsea¡®s house. ¡± Mr. Brown said, ¡°Hank, send me and your mother to your sister¡®s house now. We¡®ll pack our things and move back to our own house. We won¡®t help your sister babysit her children again. ¡°Your mother and I were so nice to Matthew, but they were so cruel to Sonny. Don¡®t you feel bad for Sonny as his father? As Sonny¡®s grandfather, I felt so heartbroken and angry when I saw Sonny being beaten like that. ¡± Before Hank could speak, his sister called. As soon as he answered, Chelsea yelled over the phone, ¡°Hank, how badly was your son beaten? My son is also a child, so how bad can it be? They asked your brother-inw to teach Matthew a lesson, and Matthew was beaten up so badly that he doesn¡¯t even look human anymore! ¡°They must¡®ve done it on purpose. They probably brought Sonny to the hospital and used my son of abusing him. They have to be responsible for my son being beaten by his father. If they don¡¯tpensate me, I won¡®t let them get away with it! They bullied us and trashed my house just because they have more people!¡± Chelsea saw how miserable her eldest son was when she got home and was heartbroken. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. She scolded her husband and immediately called her brother. ¡°Tell Liberty to ask her sister toe and apologize! They need topensate me for everything that they broke in my house as well as my son¡®s emotional damage. I won¡®t give up until I get what I want! Don¡®t think I¡®m afraid just because she has more people on her side. ¡± Chelsea hated Liberty and Serenity. She was beaten up by Liberty earlier, and her son was beaten up by her husband because of Serenity¡®s inws. Chelsea suffered a huge loss and vowed to make Serenity pay the price. Chapter 459 Chapter 459 Chapter 459 Hank said, ¡°Chelsea, you¡®re¡­¡± Before Hank could finish, his father, who was sitting in the passenger seat, reached out and snatched Hank¡®s phone. ¡°Hank, focus on driving. ¡± Mr. Brown instructed his son in a deep voice before he said to his daughter over the phone,¡± How dare you ask Serenity forpensation?!¡± + + Chelsea heard her father¡®s voice and shouted aggrievedly, ¡°Dad, George was forced to beat up Matthew. ¡± ¡°Your son made a mistake. So what if his father beat him up? I hit you too when you were young and disobedient. ¡± Chelsea said, ¡°Dad, are you alright? Why does it sound like you¡®re siding with Liberty and her sister? I¡®m your daughter! ¡°Even if Matthew made a mistake, he¡®s still a child. How bad of a mistake can he make? He didn¡®t kill or rob anyone. He just hit Sonny a few times. Matthew said that Lucas was crying because Sonny beat him. He was standing up for his younger brother and kicked Sonny a few times. How could Sonny end up in the hospital? I think they¡®re just making a fuss. ¡± Chelsea would never admit to the police that she had seen the footage of her living room. The surveince footage showed that Sonny was repeatedly beaten up by her eldest son. If she added the number of times Sonny was hit on both sides of his face, it was definitely more than ten times, which was a bit too much. The police officers saw Matthew¡®s red and swollen face along with the belt marks on his body. However, they pretended not to notice and did not say a word about it. Instead, they kept saying that her son was ruthless and that he could do such a cruel thing to a two¨C year¨Cold child. They said that if Serenity had not arrived in time, Sonny would have been beaten to death by her son. Chelsea thought, ¡®Matthew is just a child and doesn¡®t know that he can kill someone by beating them. That¡®s why he didn¡®t control his strength. Isn¡®t that normal for a kid?¡® In short, Chelsea felt that as long as Sonny was still alive, her son did nothing wrong, even if the footage showed that Lucas went to hit Sonny first. Lucas cried and said that Sonny hit him only because Sonny fought back. Of course, Chelsea was protective of her own children. She would twist the facts to make it seem like her children did nothing wrong. What did it have to do with her if someone else¡¯s child lived or died? That was Chelsea¡®s mentality. The police officers reprimanded Matthew and ordered Chelsea and George to bring Matthew to apologize. If Liberty asked forpensation, they would also have topensate her. When Chelsea was at the police station, she was rendered speechless but was unreconciled. After leaving the police station, Chelsea scolded her husband for being useless. He should have deleted the surveince footage at home so there was no evidence. When the police saw the footage, they turned out to be the ones at fault even though they suffered a big loss. Their house was trashed, but the police officers did not care. ¡°Sonny never provoked Lucas. Lucas was the one who liked to provoke Sonny. Whenever Lucas was at your brother¡®s house, Lucas would steal Sonny¡®s toys and food. ¡± Chelsea pouted and said, ¡°Lucas is the youngest in my family, so it¡®s inevitable that he¡®s a little spoiled and domineering. ¡°Dad, what does this have to do with me asking Serenity forpensation? Her inws trashed my house. I made a rough estimate of the damages, which cost around tens of thousands of dors. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Mr. Brown said coldly, ¡°They did a good job! If I were there, I wouldn¡®t just trash your house. I¡®ll also beat Matthew up! Your mother and I have taken such good care of him since he was born, but he wanted to kill my grandson!¡± Chapter 460 Chapter 460 Chapter 460 Mr. Brown added, ¡°So what if they trashed your house? I want to thank Serenity for venting anger on my behalf as well. Chelsea, if you dare ask Serenity forpensation, your mother and I will cut all ties with you. Also, I¡®ve kept a tab of all the expenses your mother and I have spent on your family, so you have to pay me back! ¡°Since your younger brother had a job, he gave us monthly living expenses that we spent on your household. But look what he got in return! His son was sent to the hospital because of your son! ¡°Don¡®t use Serenity for making a fuss. I¡®ve asked around myself. Sonny was sent to the emergency room and was treated for a long time. The doctors were cursing the abuser for being ruthless, and I saw how badly Sonny was injured! ¡°We just came out of the hospital. We¡®re going back to your house to pack our things. Your mom and I will stay in our own home from now on and will no longer babysit your children. Ask your inws to babysit them. If not, you can take care of them yourself since they¡®re your responsibility, not ours. ¡°We gave birth to you, so it¡®s our obligation to raise you and educate you, but we¡®re not obligated to raise our grandchildren. ¡± Chelsea said, ¡°Dad, did you get brainwashed by Serenity? Why are you standing on her side? ¡°You¡®re moving back with mom? You two will be all alone, so I¡®ll be worried. George already beat up Matthew. Dad, you raised him, so why don¡®t you feel sorry for him?¡± Mr. Brown said coldly, ¡°He deserves to be beaten! He was beaten by his father, so as his grandfather, I can¡®t intervene. Matthew is my grandson, but Sonny is my only paternal grandson. How can hepare with Sonny? ¡°Matthew is a Repton, and Sonny is a Brown. Sonny takes after myst name! 1 don¡®t care about the past, but this time, I can¡®t let it go when I see Sonny being beaten like this. ¡± Mr. Brown would not hit Matthew since he raised the boy, but he did not want to go on like this anymore. Even if his son and daughter¨Cinw wanted a divorce, it was their personal affairs. It would not affect his position as Sonny¡®s grandfather. How could he remain indifferent when he saw his grandson being beaten up until he had to be admitted to the hospital? Chelsea said, ¡°Dad, I won¡®t ask Serenity forpensation anymore, okay? You and mom shouldn¡®t move out. What will I do without you two? I still have to go to work. ¡± Mr. Brown did not speak and hung up the phone. He was exasperated. ¡°Dad, are you and mom really moving back to your own ce?¡± ¡°Do you still want me and your mom to take care of your nephew who beat up your son? No matter how nice we are to them, they¡®re Reptons. Chelsea¡®s inws don¡®t need to worry about anything and live infort while your mom and I raise their grandchildren. ¡°I didn¡®t even raise my paternal grandson because of them. Should I praise Matthew for bullying and hitting Sonny?¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°Don¡®t think that I¡®m siding with Liberty and Serenity. I¡®m not. I¡®m just standing on Sonny¡®s side. Sonny is only two years and five months old. He¡®ll fall if he walks a little faster. Even a p is unbearable to a kid like that, let alone what Matthew did. Although Matthew is only ten years old, he¡®s tall and strong like a fifteen¨Cyear¨Cold. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°Matthew pped Sonny in the face repeatedly, so how can Sonny bear it? We should be d that Serenity brought her inws to stop Matthew¡®s atrocities. Otherwise¡­ Sonny might be beaten to death, and the Reptons might just deny the allegations and say that Sonny fell to his death. ¡± Hank did not dare speak anymore. Chapter 461 Chapter 461 Chapter 461 Serenity and Liberty were unaware of the rare asion that Mr. Brown sided with Sonny. Sonny¡¯s swollen face subsided slightly after applying the ice pack. He kept crying and wanting to go home. Serenity asked the doctor if they could leave, and the doctor said he could be discharged from the hospital. However, they had to be careful because Sonny might get a fever at night. In the evening, Zachary and his brothers sent Liberty and Sonny home. Serenity was still worried about Sonny, so she brought Zachary to the balcony and said, ¡°Can I stay over with my sister and nephew tonight?¡± Zachary was reluctant to part with Serenity as he started to have feelings for her and wanted to cling to her 24/7 if he could. However, Serenity was Sonny¡¯s aunt, so he understood that she would want to stay back with Sonny at this time. ¡°Zachary?¡± Serenity saw his deep eyes that were staring straight at hers. His thin lips were pressed into at straight line, and he did not speak. Thus, she asked carefully, ¡°You don¡¯t want me to stay? But the doctor said Sonny might have a fever tonight, and I¡¯m worried that my sister will be too tired taking care of him alone. ¡± Zachary¡¯s big hand reached out and touched her face. His touch was gentle as he stroked her face. It felt like a gentle spring breeze that made Serenity want to close her eyes and slowly enjoy this rare tenderness. ¡°You should also take care of yourself too while taking care of Sonny. ¡± Zachary finally spoke. His voice was as deep as usual, but it was a little less cold and more affectionate. ¡°I will. ¡± ¡°Let me know if anything happens. Don¡¯t leave me out of it. ¡± Zachary always recalled the time when Serenity fought Noah Hunt and the gang by herself. She was brave and subdued the gangsters, leaving him no chance to y the hero who saved the damsel in distress. Serenity smiled. She nced at the living room and hugged Zachary¡¯s lean waist when she saw the York brothers were not looking at them. She leaned her head against his chest. Zachary hugged his wife back tightly. He liked the feeling of her in his arms. Holding her soft body like that made him feel particrly happy. Josh asked Zachary if he was in love with Serenity. Zachary thought, ¡®Maybe I¡¯m already in love with her¡­¡® ¡°Thank you, Zachary. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. ¡± Zachary was by her side every time Serenity encountered difficulties. He helped her andforted her. To her, he was like an invincible superman. Several times, Serenity was moved by Zachary¡¯s actions. That feeling gradually turned into affection. Zachary sighed and thought, ¡®Josh said that feeling touched is not the same as love. ¡± However, it was how love was formed. ¡°Serenity, we¡¯re husband and wife, so your business is also mine. Don¡¯t keep thanking me because it¡¯ll make me feel like an outsider. ¡± Serenity said while she nestled in his arms, ¡°But we signed a half¨Cyear agreement. Who knows how long our marriage willst?¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Zachary, can I tell you something?¡± ¡°What is it?¡± ¡°The drawing you threw away¡­ I just remembered that that was our agreement on the flip side. I didn¡¯t really care about the agreement and left it on my dresser. Then I used it to sketch my ideas¡­ But you destroyed it. ¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes flickered. She remembered that the flip side of the drawing was their agreement. So what if she remembered? He already burned both agreements to ashes and flushed them down the toilet. ¡°Since you ruined my copy of the agreement, are you going to give me a new copy or will you destroy yours as well?¡± That way, she would feel less insecure about the whole thing. Chapter 462 Chapter 462 Chapter 462 Zachary gently let go of Serenity, bowed his head, and looked at her. Serenity gulped. Every time she looked at him, she could not overlook his attractiveness and always wanted to take advantage of him. If he had always been so gentle, she would have jumped him in less than a week. If she was more courageous, she could even try different moves every day. When Serenity was thinking about various ways to sleep with Zachary, Zachary¡¯s deep voice resounded in her ears. He asked, ¡°When did we sign an agreement?¡± Serenity was speechless. She looked dumbfounded as she was in disbelief that Zachary would say such a thing. ¡°Back when we got our marriage license, you drafted the agreement and asked me to sign it. The contract period was half a year. ¡± Zachary looked calm and said nkly, ¡°Why don¡¯t you recite the content of the agreement for me?¡± Serenity opened her mouth but could not say a word. After so long, she could not remember much about the contents of the agreement. She only remembered that the contract period was half a year and that they should not interfere with each other¡¯s private affairs. ¡°Serenity, you might¡¯ve been too caught up in your sister¡¯s affairs recently that you¡¯re having hallucinations. We didn¡¯t actually sign an agreement. If you really think we did, I can let you search my room when you¡¯re home. If you can find the so¨Ccalled agreement that you mentioned, then I¡¯ll believe you. ¡± Serenity gaped and froze in ce. They clearly signed an agreement. Was he in denial? Zachary lowered his head, kissed her lips, and said solemnly, ¡°Don¡¯t think too much about it. I¡¯ll take my brothers out to dinner. Mrs. Lane can stay and help you girls. ¡± Serenity was still dumbfounded. Zachary, who had always been arrogant and cold, actually denied and refused to admit that they had signed an agreement. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. This shocked Serenity. After hearing what he said, she could only nod dumbly. Seeing her stunned face, Zachary smiled and let go of her hand. ¡°I¡¯ll get going then. ¡± ¡°Oh, okay. Treat your brothers to a nice dinner, and I¡¯ll transfer the money to you. ¡± ¡°No need. I have money. We don¡¯t need to split everything so clearly between us. ¡± Serenity took out her phone and wanted to transfer money to Zachary, but he had already returned to the living room. She stopped looking at her phone and watched as he ushered his brothers out for dinner. Zachary also did not forget to instruct Mrs. Lane to cook for the Hunt sisters. Zachary knew that at this moment, the Hunt sisters were definitely not in the mood to go out for dinner with them. However, he was also afraid that they were too upset to eat, so he left Mrs. Lane there to cook for them and make sure that they eat. ¡°I¡¯m exhausted from going around with you guys all day. Zack, I¡¯m going for dinner with you boys before I go home. ¡± Grandma May chose to leave with her grandchildren. She said to her granddaughter¨Cinw, who came in from the balcony, ¡°Seren, call us if you need anything. Don¡¯t worry. Even if the sky is falling, these boys are tall enough to hold the sky up for you girls. ¡± Grandma May¡¯s words warmed the Hunt sisters¡® hearts. ¡°I will, Nana. ¡± Serenity walked Grandma May out. ¡°Zachary, take good care of Nana. ¡± Grandma May smiled. ¡°I don¡¯t expect him to take care of me. It¡¯s already a great blessing if he doesn¡¯t anger me. ¡± Zachary said, ¡°Nana, how could you badmouth me in front of my wife?¡± Grandma May kept badmouthing Zachary. Was he not good enough? In order to repay a favor, Zachary married his grandmother¡¯s savior before he fell in love with her. Was that not enough? His grandmother was still saying bad things about him in front of Serenity. Did she not want a great¨Cgranddaughter soon? Since Zachary still had to hug a pillow at night, his grandmother could also hug a small pillow as her great¨Cgranddaughter. Chapter 463 Chapter 463 Chapter 463 The eight York brothers surrounded their grandmother and left. The group went to the Wiltspoon Hotel for dinner. When the lobby manager at Wiltspoon Hotel saw the York brothersing in with Old Mrs. York but without their bodyguards, he was a little lost. Should he greet them respectfully? However, Mr. Callum said that as long as Mr. Zachary did not bring his bodyguard, he should treat them as regr hotel guests and pretend not to know them. While the lobby manager was deliberating on what to do, Zachary and his family had already entered the hotel and walked past the manager. All eight of them York brothers were extraordinary. When they walked into the hotel together, they instantly attracted the attention of countless people. The passersby heard the brothers talking to the olddy softly and heard them address her as their grandmother. They gave the olddy envious looks. This olddy was so blessed to have eight extraordinarily handsome grandsons. Their eyes were green with envy! If Grandma May knew what they were thinking, she would say, ¡°Don¡¯t envy me. I have too many grandsons to worry about. Their marriage alone is enough to give me a headache!¡± After the meal, Zachary said, ¡°Callum, take Nana back to the main residence. I¡¯ll visit the Buchams¡® residence. ¡± Josh had the evidence of Hank¡¯s transfer of property, and Julian Bucham was at home tonight. Zachary told Josh that he would go over and get it himself. ¡°I¡¯m not going back to the main residence. ¡± Grandma May refused. ¡°Serenity isn¡¯t going home tonight, Nana, so you don¡¯t have any good show to watch. You¡¯ll get bored if you stay in Brynfield. You cane back tomorrow if you want. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡± Grandma May red at Zachary. ¡°I won¡¯t be bored. I¡¯m not watching anyone¡¯s show either. I just miss my granddaughter¨Cinw and want to live with her. Anyway, I¡¯m not staying with you, so you can¡¯t control me. ¡± Zachary could not help butugh. ¡°That¡¯s my house. ¡± ¡°But are you in charge?¡± Zachary choked. At home, Zachary let Serenity call the shots. ¡°You don¡¯t have the right to speak if you don¡¯t call the shots, so shut up!¡± Zachary was speechless as he thought, ¡®Is she even my grandma?! Deep breaths!¡® Grandma May got up and instructed her grandchildren. ¡°Tomorrow, we¡¯re going to that house again to ask forpensation, so you boys will have to get together again. We can¡¯t let them get away with beating up Sonny without paying the price!¡± Callum represented the rest and said, ¡°Nana, since we¡¯ve taken this into our own hands, we¡¯ll definitely see to it that it¡¯s settled. Don¡¯t worry. ¡± ¡°Find out the details of that family and cut off their sources of ie. We¡¯ll see how arrogant they¡¯ll be then!¡± Zachary answered, ¡°Nana, I¡¯m already on it. Grandma May finally praised Zachary. What a rare asion! ¡°Good job. If you had such a quick reaction when you¡¯re with Serenity, I guarantee that I¡¯ll be a great¨C grandmother by next year!¡± Zachary rolled his eyes. His grandmother liked to praise him and insult him at the same time. In the end, Grandma May got into Callum¡¯s car and went back to the main residence. As soon as she got back, Rowanined that they left him out. Grandma Mayughed and said cheerfully, ¡°You cane with me tomorrow as an extra headcount!¡± Rowan thought, ¡®I¡¯m only filling in for the headcount tomorrow and missed the most exciting part today¡­¡® Meanwhile, Zachary took his exclusive car along with his bodyguards and went to the Buchams residence. He did not go to Josh¡¯s house but went to Julian¡¯s ce instead. Chapter 464 Chapter 464 Chapter 464 Josh was talking to Julian. Although they were second cousins, it did not prevent them from being close¨Cknit brothers. A bodyguard in a ck uniform entered the room while walking in front of the two men, and said respectfully, ¡°Mr. Julian, Mr. Josh. Mr. Zachary York is here. ¡± ¡°Let him in. ¡± The bodyguard responded respectfully and turned to leave. Josh pointed to the yellow envelope on the table. ¡°Zachary¡¯s here to collect that. ¡± ¡°He came in person because he wants to meet me. ¡± Julian instructed the butler to make tea and serve some fruit to the guest. Julian often used his family¡¯s influence to help Josh. In fact, it was to help Zachary. Zachary knew that very well, so he came in person to thank Julian. ¡°Zachary wanted toe and see you long ago, but you¡¯ve been busy and you¡¯re always away from home, so he hasn¡¯t had the chance. ¡± ¡°Since he¡¯s your friend, he¡¯s also my friend. Friends help each other, so he doesn¡¯t have to stand on ceremony. I¡¯m d that you¡¯ve proven your value in York Corporation. ¡± Julian patted Josh on the shoulder. ¡°Work hard, but don¡¯t just focus on work. You should start thinking about marriage. Your mother keeps talking about how you still don¡¯t have a girlfriend at your age. ¡± ¡°Julian, you¡¯re older than I am, but you don¡¯t have a girlfriend either, so why should I worry?¡± Julian said, ¡°Nevermind¡­ Forget I said anything. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡± The bodyguard from earlier invited Zachary in. Zachary¡¯s security detail helped to carry the gifts that Zachary brought and silently retreated to the entrance. ¡°Zachary!¡± Josh stood up and walked toward him. Julian got up too but he let Zachary approach him. Josh introduced them, and the two men stretched out their right hands. ¡°Julian, nice to finally meet you. ¡± ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ve heard a lot about you. Now that I¡¯ve met you in person, I believe that you¡¯re just as legendary as they say. ¡± 1/2 The two men shook hands, and Julian asked Zachary to have a seat. ¡°Mr. York, you don¡¯t have toe bearing so many gifts. ¡± 11 ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. ¡® Zachary often asked Josh to help him investigate things, which utilized the Buchams¡®work of information. The Buchams¡® intelligence is controlled by Julian, and Josh helping Zachary was equivalent to Julian helping Zachary. Julian was usually elusive, so Zachary never had a chance to meet him. It was a rare asion. that Julian was at home tonight, so Zachary hurried over. After exchanging some pleasantries, Josh picked up the yellow envelope and handed it to Zachary. ¡°This is the evidence you wanted. If we didn¡¯t dig into it, we wouldn¡¯t have known how shocking it is. Your scumbag brother¨Cinw has more than one million dors in his savings. ¡°His appetite is also getting bigger, so he earns more side ie. I think it¡¯ll be exciting to hand this evidence to his boss. ¡± In fact, there was no need to suppress Waltham Electronics. As long as they handed this evidence of Hank epting bribes andmissions to Waltham Electronics¡® boss, Hank¡¯s managerial career would be over. However, Waltham Electronics and a subsidiary of York Corporation werepetitors, and Zachary wanted to take the opportunity to suppress them. Once Waltham Electronics could not hold back any longer, York Corporation would hand over the evidence of Hank¡¯s side ie and threaten them that they could keep theirpany if they fired Hank and Jessica. Waltham Electronics¡® boss would have hated Hank and Jessica to the core by then because they caused thepany trouble for no reason. He would then make life difficult for the cheating pair. That way, Zachary could suppress his opponent while dealing with Hank and Jessica, killing two birds with one stone. Zachary took out the evidence of Hank¡¯s transfer of property from the envelope. After reading it carefully, he was fuming. He heard from his grandmother that the divorce agreement Hank prepared stated that the house and the car belonged to him and that he did not have much savings. Therefore, he was only willing to give Liberty thirty thousand dors. Adding up all of Hank¡¯s savings, including the money he spent on Jessica, Zachary calcted that it was roughly more than two million dors. If Liberty filed for divorce and divided their property, she could get at least a million dors. Chapter 465 Chapter 465 Chapter 465 Ring ring ring¡­ Julian¡¯s cell phone rang After he answered the phone, he said apologetically, ¡°Mr. York, I have something urgent to attend to. My apologies for not being able to host you. ¡± Zachary quickly stood up. ¡°Josh, please entertain Mr. York on my behalf. ¡± Julian instructed his cousin and left. After Julian left, Josh took Zachary to his ce. Zachary then listened to Josh¡¯s motherining that if Josh did not get a girlfriend soon, he would be alone forever. Finally, Zachary managed to excuse himself. When they got out of Josh¡¯s house, Zachary said, ¡°Next time when your mother is at home, don¡¯t ask me toe over. ¡± Joshughed. ¡°Whatever she says just goes in one ear and out the other. ¡± ¡°How was your blind date with Ms. Sox? Didn¡¯t you mention it to your family?¡± ¡°Julian knows about it, but I didn¡¯t tell anyone else lest they pester Ms. Sox and scare her away. ¡± Zachary patted him on the shoulder sympathetically. ¡°If you like her, you just need to work harder to get out of bachelorhood. ¡± ¡°After getting married, they¡¯ll urge me to have a baby, then another baby, and endless babies! The elders will never stop. ¡± Josh did not believe that his parents would stop nagging him if he got married. Look, even after Zachary kept his promise to Grandma May and married Serenity, Grandma May was still harping on them to have a child. ¡°I like Ms. Sox. She¡¯s straightforward and doesn¡¯t beat around the bush. Sometimes, she leaves me speechless and I have no way to refute her. ¡± Those were not problems to him because Josh fancied girls like Jasmine. ¡°Then you should take the initiative to pursue her. ¡± Zachary was rather pleased that Josh liked Jasmine. At least he did not y cupid in vain. Josh smiled and said nothing. He then watched as Zachary left his house with a group of bodyguards. Early next morning, Zachary arrived at Bright Boulevard. He called Serenity in advance, and Serenity was waiting for him at the entrance of the neighborhood. After seeing his car, Serenity walked toward him with a smile. Zachary got out of the car and seemed to remember something. He turned around and took a bouquet of flowers out of the car. ¡°Seren. ¡± He addressed Serenity differently. Seeing that he was holding a bouquet, Serenity was reminded of how awkward he was the first time he gave her flowers. At that time, she was so anxious. Heter gave her the bouquet and said that it did not mean anything. Serenity was happy that he was so stubborn and arrogant because this proved that he had never been in a rtionship before. Zachary was an intelligent man who had a low EQ and was ate bloomer in the romance scene. Serenity liked that Zachary developed feelings for her. She had to train him to be a good husband. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Um¡­ I think this bouquet of flowers¡­¡± Zachary was still not used to giving his wife flowers. He was desperately searching for a good excuse but his mind turned out nk. He could not think of any excuses. He just knew that he had to hand over the bouquet to her. Serenity took the bouquet, lowered her head, and smelled the fragrance of the flowers. She quickly raised her head and said with a smile, ¡°This bouquet is beautiful and smells great. I love it!¡± She was in a good mood when she received a gift from her husband so early in the morning. Zachary struck while the iron was hot and quickly said, ¡°If you like it, I¡¯ll send one to you every day. ¡± Serenity was touched by his sweet talk. ¡°There¡¯s no need to give me a bouquet every day. We don¡¯t have a vase to put these flowers at home. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll buy you a vase. ¡± Chapter 466 Chapter 466 Chapter 466 Serenity was ted that he had the thoughtfulness to do so, but she still rejected the idea. Just as Zachary was about to anxiously say something, with one arm hugging the flowers, she hooked her other arm around his neck. She pulled his head lower, leaned in closer and said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t put too many flowers at home, or else the owner will be easily charmed. ¡± After she said that, she even patted Zachary¡¯s chest¨Cshe was telling him not to be easily charmed by others. Zachary was at a loss for words. Was there such a saying? He would have to ask Josh about this another day. Serenity got into his car. Zachary returned to his car and as he started it, he asked, ¡°How¡¯s Sonny?¡± ¡°The swelling hasn¡¯t gone awaypletely. Last night, he had a fever and cried the whole. night. This morning, his fever finally went down but he was so tired from crying he only fell. asleep in my sister¡¯s arms then. ¡± Serenity¡¯s good mood deted again once Sonny was mentioned. ¡°Zachary,¡± Serenity looked at him with her head tilted and said, ¡°If, and I¡¯m saying if, in the future we also have children, no matter what happens or how our rtionship has changed, don¡¯t hurt the children, okay?¡± Zachary immediately stepped on the brake. He too turned to look at Serenity. The pair of husband and wife looked each other in the eyes and both could see the seriousness in each other¡¯s gazes. He had never said to her that he loved her, but his feelings toward her had seeped into his every action. She had never said to him either that she had fallen for him, but she had gradually relied on him. Both of them knew that their worlds were starting to integrate with each other, little by little. Zachary reached out his hand and lightly caressed Serenity¡¯s face. He leaned his body over and his handsome face got closer. When Serenity closed her eyes, light kissesnded on her forehead, her face, and her lips. ¡°Serenity, if you treat me sincerely, I will definitely love you back tenfold. ¡± ¡°I have very little room in my heart. If I let you in, there¡¯s only room for you, and none for anyone else. Our rtionship will never change. If we have children¡­ Then that¡¯s just a continuation of our lives. I¡¯d rather get hurt myself than ever touch a hair on our children¡¯s heads. ¡± Serenity opened her eyes and looked straight into his deep gaze. His eyes were as dark and deep as an abyss, but yet held a sort of maism that attracted her. She could not help but want to jump into those deep pools and sink into its depths with him. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Zachary. ¡± ¡°Yeah?¡± ¡°I think I¡¯ve fallen for you. ¡± Zachary chuckled and pecked her lips once more. ¡°I¡¯m a ship that¡¯s heading toward the shore of happiness. If you¡¯re willing, I¡¯ll wee you aboard to sail with me. ¡± Pausing for a moment, he then said, ¡°But it¡¯d be best if you thought about it and figured out if what you feel for me is love or gratitude. Don¡¯t confuse the two. ¡± Serenity was silent for a moment before she replied, ¡°You¡¯re right. I should think about it properly. ¡± Was what she felt for him love or gratitude? ¡°If there really is only gratitude for you and not love, what then?¡± Zachary was struck speechless. Seeing the way he could not respond to that, sheughed and pushed him away. ¡°You should drive. Don¡¯t stop here and block others¡® way. ¡± Zachary sat straight and returned to his usual serious look, as if he was not the very person who had said those touching words earlier. He started the car again. Serenity had a feeling that this incident with Sonny and having had the conversation earlier had pulled the distance between their hearts closer. Inside the car, the couple did not speak and only the music was heard ying. As they were making their way to the lobby of Liberty¡¯s ce, Zachary suddenly said, ¡°Divorce really causes a lot of harm to the kids. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°But there truly isn¡¯t a need to maintain some marriages. If those sorts of marriages don¡¯t end, it¡¯ll still cause harm to the kids. ¡± Zachary remained silent. Chapter 467 Chapter 467 Chapter 467 After Zachary parked the car, he remembered the evidence of Hank¡¯s asset transfers and called out to Serenity who was about to get out of the car. ¡°I asked a friend to help look into Hank¡¯s asset transfers. My friend was very helpful and sent me the evidencest night. I put it in the backseat. It¡¯s in that yellow folder. ¡± ¡°Your friend truly was very helpful. He managed to gather the evidence so quickly. ¡± Serenity was not only grateful to that friend of his. She was curious about him and really wanted to meet him. She thought it would take a long time to gather the evidence, since Hank had not just started doing this recently. Yet, Zachary¡¯s friend managed to gather all the evidence in just a day¡¯s time. ¡°Zachary, it¡¯s such a waste if that friend of yours doesn¡¯t open his own detective agency. ¡± After Serenity got out of the car, she opened the door to the backseat and picked up the yellow folder that had been ced there. ¡°He has a rtive that specializes in information gathering. His family has argework, so they¡¯re highly efficient. ¡± The Bucham family¡¯s intelligencework spanned far and wide and Wiltspoon was their home base, so their intelligencework in Wiltspoon was deeply rooted. It could be said that as long as the Buchams wanted to know about it, there was nothing they would not be able to find out. However, their services had an exorbitant price tag, which ordinary people could not afford. ¡°I always thought people like that only existed in novels. I didn¡¯t think there¡¯d be such an amazing family in real life. ¡± After Serenity picked the yellow folder up, she put the bouquet of flowers Zachary gave her back into the car. Zachary looked at her. Serenity exined, ¡°My sister¡¯s in a bad mood right now. Let¡¯s not show off our affection for each other in front of her. ¡± She leaned forward, kissed him, and said as she smiled, ¡°It¡¯s fine as long as I know you gave me flowers. ¡± There would be many chances to show off their love in the future, so there was no need to rush it now. Zachary was relieved. ¡°The two of you really do have a great bond. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. ¡± ¡°We only had each other to rely on for more than a decade, and my sister did a lot to raise me. She was only five years older than me, and when we suddenly lost our parents, she was not only a sister but a mother to me too. In my heart, she¡¯s the most important person in my life. ¡± She and Zachary walked into the building together. ¡°You and your cousins share a really good bond too. They respect you a lot as the eldest and they¡¯re very respectful of me even though. we¡¯ve only met a few times before. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Since we were young, our parents taught us to be respectful to each other and that having a harmonious family would lead to sess in any undertaking. They said that no matter how powerful a person is, they need the support and help of friends and family to survive in this world. ¡® Nothing of significance was ever achieved by an individual acting alone. When he was just a kid, he had been internally recognized as the sessor of the family. When he came of age, he took charge of the huge York Corporation. He stood at the center while his cousins revolved around him, helping and supporting each other the whole time. Despite all that, the biggest share of the burdeny on his shoulders. How could his cousins not respect him when he bore the heaviest share of the burden on his shoulders alone? Moreover, if someone helped him do it, they would be respected in return. The couple went upstairs together. When they entered Liberty¡¯s home, they saw Mrs. Lane falling asleep as she sat on the sofa. Mrs. Lane woke up when she heard the door open and saw that Serenity and her husband had returned. She hurriedly stood up with a smile. ¡°Mr. York, Miss Hunt, breakfast is ready. ¡± ¡°Mrs. Lane, make sure you catch up on sleepter. These few days have been hard on you. ¡± Mrs. Lane hummed in agreement. Last night, the three adults had not slept well because of Sonny¡¯s fever and continuous crying. Serenity walked into the room to check on her sister and nephew. Seeing them finally be able to sleep soundly, she was relieved. She leaned down, lightly touched Sonny¡¯s still¨Cpale face, and brushed a kiss on his small face. She said softly, ¡°Sonny, I¡¯ll definitely help you get justice. ¡± Serenity then tip¨Ctoed out of her sister¡¯s room. Chapter 468 Chapter 468 Chapter 468 ¡°Mrs. Lane, it wasn¡¯t easy for Sonny and my sister to fall asleep, so don¡¯t wake them up yet. Just keep some porridge warm on the stove for them to eat when they wake up. ¡± Mrs. Lane nodded. ¡°Alright. ¡± The three ate breakfast together. Serenity made herself a cup of instant coffee to wake herself up. Once Mrs. Lane finished eating, she left the little dining area. Zachary took advantage of this to reach out and hold Serenity¡¯s hand. ¡°Seren. ¡± Zachary said warmly, ¡°You should stay home and rest. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. I¡¯ll go alone. ¡± Serenity held her hand back and reassured him, ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯ll be able to hold up as long as I finish this cup of coffee. And anyway, you¡¯re going to the Reptons¡®. You might have to continue arguing with them, and you¡¯re not as good as I am in that department. Even if brought all your cousins, you might not be able to win against Chelsea Repton in an argument. ¡± you All the Yorks were cultured people. Arguing was definitely not in their DNA. ¡°I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s aunt. I definitely have to help him seek justice when he¡¯s been bullied so terribly into this state. Yesterday, when Sonny fainted, I didn¡¯t have the time to duke it out with the Reptons because I was concerned about him. Now that he¡¯s recovered slightly, I¡¯m in the mood to confront them. ¡± Zachary looked deeply into her eyes. Serenity smiled. ¡°Zachary, stop looking at me like that as if you¡¯re trying to seduce me. You¡¯ll make my heart beat faster. My thoughts will go wild and I just wish I could pounce on you and gobble you up. ¡± Zachary was struck speechless. Ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s handphone started ringing. It was Callum calling. Zachary picked up the call. ¡°Zack, we¡¯re all waiting at the XX highway intersection¡¯s toll booth. ¡± ¡°Alright, I¡¯lle over now. ¡± Zachary hung up and said to Serenity, ¡°They¡¯re waiting for us at the same spot as yesterday. ¡± Yee Serenity hurriedly chugged her unfinished coffee down in three gulps. After a few more words to Mrs. Lane, the couple left Liberty¡¯s home. On the way there, Serenity received a call from Elisa Stone. ¡°Serenity, you got the photos I sent you, right? Do you feel a sense of familiarity after seeing them?¡± Elisa had heard from Serenity that someone in her hometown had adopted a girl before and hoped she could find some useful leads through Serenity to find her aunt. Today, her mother would return from their seaside vi. Elisa hoped very much that when her mother returned, she would have some good news for her that could cheer her up. Serenity hesitated for a moment before saying, ¡°Elisa, I do think your aunt looks familiar to me. Like¡­ If Sonny wore pigtails and a dress, he¡¯d look a little simr to your aunt. Maybe¡­ Maybe kids all look about the same when they¡¯re that young. ¡± Afraid that Elisa would misunderstand that she was trying to create a rtionship where there was none, Serenity hurriedly exined, ¡°Elisa, I don¡¯t mean anything else by it. Just that when I looked at it closely, I thought Sonny shared some degrees of simrity to your aunt. In a few days, when I¡¯m free, I¡¯ll try to draw a likeness of what your aunt might look like as an adult from the photo of her as a kid. ¡± If Sonny really did look simr to Elisa¡¯s aunt, that would mean her mother was Elisa¡¯s aunt. However, her mother died fifteen years ago. Elisa was silent. Her silence made Serenity uneasy. Worried that Elisa would misunderstand her, she said once again, ¡°Elisa, give me a few days¡® time. I¡¯ll help illustrate your aunt as an adult. I¡¯m just not free right now. I mentioned that Sonny looked a little like your aunt, but maybe kids all look about the same at that age, so don¡¯t think much about it. ¡± Mrs. Stone had been looking for her sister for many years now, and there had been people who had tried to pose as her sister to try and make connections with the Stones. Serenity did not want Elisa to misunderstand her. Chapter 469 Chapter 469 Chapter 469 While Serenity was feeling uneasy, Elisa spoke. Her voice was abnormally calm when she asked Serenity, ¡°Serenity, my mom wille home around noon. Can I go to your ce to pick up Sonny?¡± Elisa did not have much of an impression of her aunt, and could not tell much from the photos of her. In Serenity¡¯s words, children were all cute when they were young. If Sonny looked like her aunt, even if it was just a little, she could not just let it go. She had to let her mother see him. Elisa recalled the moment she first met Serenity. Something inexplicable had made her want to get closer to Serenity. The first time she met Sonny, she liked him right away too. If Sonny was her aunt¡¯s grandson, that might exin why she liked Sonny from the moment she met him. It was not like she had never seen a kid of Sonny¡¯s age before, but only Sonny made her like him from the very first moment. He made her want to kidnap him to be her own nephew and when she bought toys for him, she was not stingy at all. She even wished she could open a toy factory for Sonny just to make toys for him. It was the same for Serenity. Considering her status, there had never been a shortage of people by her side who sucked to her and ttered her. She did not like them. The number of true friends the twenty¨Csix¨Cyear¨Cold had could be counted on one hand because she was picky. up However, that closeness felt at first sight with Serenity allowed her to disregard Serenity¡¯s family background and ss, which made her befriend Serenity willingly. That was not just because Serenity helped her think of ways to pursue Mr. York. It was because she really liked being friends with Serenity. ¡°Elisa, I can¡¯t do that right now. Something¡¯s happened with Sonny. ¡± Hearing that, Elisa¡¯s heart skipped a beat. She asked worriedly, ¡°What happened to Sonny?¡± Serenity hesitated for a moment before deciding to tell the truth. ¡°You know my sister asked her husband for a divorce, right? After that, the Browns took advantage of my sister¡¯s inattention to kidnap Sonny and sent him to Chelsea¡¯s house. ¡°But they didn¡¯t take good care of him. Chelsea¡¯s younger son hit Sonny and when Sonny retaliated, he ran crying to his older brother to get revenge on Sonny when he was the one who started it first. That little b*stard beat Sonny so badly that he had to be hospitalized. ¡± Elisa immediately got furious. ¡°Serenity, why didn¡¯t you tell me when such a serious thing happened? I told you to just tell me and I¡¯d definitely help you. How¡¯s Sonny now? Has the person who attacked Sonny been caught?¡± Setting aside the possibility that Sonny might very well be her aunt¡¯s grandson, she could not stand hearing that Sonny had been attacked purely because he was so cute and she really liked him. ¡°Sonny has a soft tissue injury to the face that hasn¡¯t healed yet. His attacker also kicked him. twice. I saw the security camera footage, Sonny was sent flying as far as a meter away. I really want to tear his attacker to shreds for this! But¡­ his attacker is still a kid too, around ten years old. ¡± No matter how big and burly Matthew Repton looked, his age was the crux of it. He really was just a ten¨Cyear¨Cold kid. ¡°We¡¯ve reported it to the police, but for a ten¨Cyear¨Cold kid, education is the emphasis. They can¡¯t arrest him and can onlypel his parents to subject him to strict discipline.N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Right now, my husband and I are going over to discuss the issue ofpensation with them. ¡°Sonny suffered a really big shock and fainted on the spot. Last night, when we left the hospital and returned home, he had a high fever and couldn¡¯t stop crying. He only managed to fall asleep in my sister¡¯s arms this morning after his fever went down and tiring himself out from crying. ¡± ¡°A ten¨Cyear¨Cold kid beat Sonny so cruelly? And they¡¯re cousins, right? Your sister¡¯s sister¨Cinw is a rare specimen in this world. With a mother like that, how can anyone expect her kids to turn out well? Serenity, send me the location. I¡¯ll gather a few cars of people to go over. They¡¯re not going to fight, just scare them a little, so they won¡¯t bully Sonny again in the future. ¡± Elisa was beyond livid after hearing all that. She was a protective person. It did not matter why the other party had hit Sonny, she would always be on Sonny¡¯s side. ¡°My husband called all his cousins toe over. There are already about eight or nine people there. I don¡¯t need your help with that for now. ¡± Serenity thanked Elisa, but politely turned down Elisa¡¯s offer to bring more people over. Elisa¡¯s temper was rather¡­ vtile. Their visit to the Reptons today was purely for negotiation. If they brought Elisa with them, Serenity was afraid she would not be able to contain her temper and would blow up on the Reptons. It was enough to bring just the York cousins with them. ¡°Your husband has that many cousins?¡± Chapter 470 Chapter 470 Chapter 470 ¡°Yeah, they¡¯re a pretty big family. Thank you, Elisa. ¡± Elisa felt relieved after hearing that Serenity¡¯s husband had brought backup. ¡°Serenity, you had a shotgun marriage with that husband of yours, right? It seems like he¡¯s not that bad. At least he¡¯s willing to help out when you run into trouble. ¡± Unlike Liberty¡¯s husband. So what if they had known each other for twelve years? He still could not match up to Serenity¡¯s husband from a shotgun marriage. ¡°Alright. I won¡¯t go this time, but the next time, if you run into trouble again, you have to tell me, or else I¡¯ll consider you¡¯re no longer thinking of me as a friend. Send your sister¡¯s address to me. I¡¯ll visit Sonny there. ¡± Serenity did not deny this request. After she ended the call, Serenity sent her sister¡¯s address to Elisa Stone. Zachary had been partially paying attention to Serenity¡¯s conversation with Elisa. When he heard Elisa wanted to bring people over, his hands that were ced on the steering wheel tightened. If Elisa Stone came over, his identity would be revealed. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. He did not want it to be suddenly revealed. That way, Serenity would not be mentally prepared for it and it would be hard for her to ept. Plus, their feelings were not firm yet. It was not suitable for his secret to be exposed all of a sudden. Luckily, Serenity politely declined Elisa¡¯s goodwill. Zachary did not have any positive feelings towards Elisa, but could not deny that Elisa was sincere toward Serenity. Elisa¡¯s temperament and status meant she did not need to keep it in no matter what she encountered as she could do whatever she wanted. Zachary pretended to ask casually, ¡°Was that Ms. Stone?¡± ¡°Yeah. She sent her mom and aunt¡¯s photo from when they were little for me to take a look. That day, I nced at it but didn¡¯t notice anything. Later on, when I looked at it a little closer, I suddenly felt her aunt looks pretty simr to Sonny. ¡± Zachary was so shocked by this statement that he nearly ran into the car in front of him. He immediately hit the brakes. Serenity¡¯s body jolted forward for an instant. ¡°Don¡¯t drive so quickly. Why don¡¯t I drive instead?¡± Serenity even said of him, ¡°You should drive a little slower. It¡¯s better to stop for three minutes rather than get just a second ahead. ¡± When she drove, she would not speed unless there was something urgent. Otherwise, she was usually very steady. Zachary started moving the car again and said, ¡°The traffic conditions were so good I couldn¡¯t resist speeding up. ¡°Serenity, you said Sonny looks like Elisa Stone¡¯s aunt?¡± Zachary continued to pretend like nothing was wrong and asked Serenity. Serenity did not notice his odd behavior. His acting was Oscar¨Cworthy. She was not well versed in acting and was not able to tell. ¡°A little. There are maybe around four or five degrees of simrity. Sonny looks more like my sister, but also a little bit like Hank. ¡± At the mention of this, Serenity suddenly gasped in realization. ¡°Oh! If Sonny looks like Elisa¡¯s aunt, my sister should look even more like her. ¡± However, when Elisa saw her sister, she did not have any strange reaction. Maybe her sister was too fat, so Elisa could not tell? Chapter 471 Chapter 471 Chapter 471 It was also possible that Elisa Stone could not imagine how her aunt would look like as an adult. Serenity thought to herself that once she returned from the Reptons¡®, she would work on drawing the likeness of Elisa¡¯s aunt as an adult right away. Would it share a resemnce with her sister? ¡°Does that mean your mother is Ms. Stone¡¯s aunt?¡± Zachary could only think of one word¨Cmelodrama! This was too melodramatic! To top it off, such a melodramatic thing was happening to his wife. The worst part was, Elisa Stone had publicly confessed her love to him before and openly pursued him too. Serenity had even helped her pursue him before. If it were not for him putting on his ring and showing it off, Elisa Stone would still being to his office to make a fuss every day and annoy him. At first, he wanted to teach Elisa Stone a harsh lesson, but unexpectedly, she became good friends with Serenity, which stopped him from being able to do anything. He had to give special treatment to people who were sincerely kind to Serenity. The bunch of Hunt b*stards had stopped making trouble for Serenitytely. He had a hand in it, but so did Elisa Stone. The Hunts did not know that he was Serenity¡¯s pir and thought it was Elisa Stone instead. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. They only stopped for now because they greatly feared Elisa¡¯s status. ¡°I don¡¯t know if she is either. My mom¡¯s already been dead for fifteen years. If she is¡­¡± Serenity knew Mrs. Stone had insistently been looking for her sister for decades now. If she found out at the end of her search that her sister had passed away long ago, Mrs. Stone would suffer a great blow. She felt sad for her own mother too. ¡°Maybe it¡¯s just a coincidence. ¡± With her mood downcast, Serenity said, ¡°Mrs. Stone has persisted in looking for her sister. My mom never brought up her family when she was alive, but if she was still alive, I think she would want to find her family. ¡°She did mention to us before that she wanted to find out if she was abandoned by her biological parents or if she had been kidnapped and sold by traffickers. ¡± Zachary was silent. If his deceased mother-inw was Mrs. Stone¡®s biological younger sister, that meant Serenity and Elisa Stone were cousins. Their rtionship would only get closer. As Serenity¡¯s husband, he would have to follow her to meet her aunt in the future¡­ His identity would very soon be exposed. ¡°Zachary, don¡®t you think this is all so very melodramatic? I think so too. I never thought plot devices like those in novels could happen in real life. ¡± Serenity sighed and added, ¡°My sister and I both don¡®t know where my mom¡®s real family stays, so we have no leads. We¡®ll just have to see what Elisa¡®s mother says. Elisa said her mother will be returning from their seaside vi at noon. ¡± She did not hide her observation and told Elisa Stone. To Elisa, this was a lead. The Stones had spent so much manpower and resources over the decades to look for Mrs. Stone¡®s sister. Now that a lead had appeared, no matter if it was true or false, Mrs. Stone would meet the two sisters. ¡°Technology is so advanced now. You just need to do a DNA test to see if you and your sister match Mrs. Stone to know if you¡®re rted. ¡± Mrs. Stone had been looking for her sister all this while. There would always be people who wanted to forge a connection with the wealthy by posing as the missing person. However, considering the Stones¡® status, these imposters would not seed just because they were brave enough to do so. The Stones would definitely investigate them from all angles. Now, it was even easier. You only needed to do a single DNA test to find out if they were really rted or not. It was simply impossible to impersonate a person. Unless the DNA test results were tampered with. Even so, that was not very realistic, because the Stones would be watching closely. The fact that Clive Stone could be his rival meant he was no schmuck either. ¡°That¡¯s true. ¡± Serenity suddenly saw the light. It was not like she wanted to pose as Elisa Stone¡¯s cousin. It was just that Elisa had asked her for help and she unexpectedly noticed that Elisa¡®s aunt looked somewhat simr to Sonny. It would be determined whether her mother was the sister Mrs. Stone had been looking for once Mrs. Stone returned and carried out a DNA test with both the Hunt sisters. If she was, great. Otherwise, that would be fine too. Serenity would just go with the flow. Whatever the result was, she could ept it calmly. Zachary did not say more. Right now, his heart was in chaos, and also a little nervous. Chapter 472 Chapter 472 Chapter 472 First things first, they had to deal with the problem at hand and that was seeking justice for Sonny. The issue of his identity being exposed could probably be dyed a little more because he would be leaving for Annenburg soon to attend Ben Young¨CJohnson and Jane Murphy¡¯s wedding. Anyway, it could be dyed for a while. He also had to confess the truth to Serenity before Mrs. Stone saw him. He hoped Serenity¡¯s reaction would not be too fierce. In the beginning, when he did not feel anything for her at all and did not understand her either, he thought it was normal for him to hide his identity in order to test her character. After all, with his status, who knew if the women who approached him did so for the money or for him as a person? Now that he had learned about Serenity¡¯s character, way of handling things, self¨C confidence, strength, and independence, they were very much to his liking, and he was unconsciously attracted to her. On Elisa¡¯s side, once she ended the call with Serenity, she immediately instructed her domestic helper, ¡°Mrs. Franklin, please prepare some supplements suitable for children to consume. They¡¯re to be a gift. ¡± Mrs. Franklin asked, ¡°Miss, how old is the child?¡± ¡°A little over two years old. ¡± ¡°Children that age don¡¯t have to take supplements if they¡¯re healthy. ¡± Mrs. Franklin advised her employer¡¯s daughter. Elisa had not been married before, so it was normal not to know things in this aspect. It was her duty to advise the youngdy, lest the youngdy were to give the wrong present and take anger out on her when she returned. her ¡°Not even a little?¡± Now that she thought about it, Sonny was healthy and indeed did not need any supplements. ¡°Unless they¡¯re iron, zinc, or calcium supplements, but we don¡¯t have any at home. ¡± Among the three Stone siblings, Clive was married, but because he was pliant to his wife and the couple still wanted to enjoy their time as a couple, they had not had children yet. Meanwhile, Anthony and Elisa did not even warrant a mention here as they were both still single. That was the reason there were no health products suitable for children at home. ¡°Forget it then. There¡®s no need to prepare children¡®s supplements then. Just help me prepare some nourishing food for me to send over to Liberty. I can¡®t show up empty-handed now, can I? When I go out in a bit, I¡®ll buy a few toys for Sonny at the toy shop outside too. ¡± If Liberty heard this, she would have thought, ¡®I¡®m already as fat as a pig and being forced by Mr. Lewis to lose weight, and now Elisa wants to give me nourishing food?¡® ¡°Do you want it now?¡± Elisa thought for a moment, then replied, ¡°Just have it ready. After my mom gets back, i¡®ll bring it with me when I go out then. ¡± Sonny looked like her aunt. Elisa thought it would be better if she brought her mother to visit so she could see Sonny for herself. No matter if they were rted or not, it was still a thread of hope. She would not misunderstand Serenity to have ulterior motives; they could not fake this anyway. Her mother would still do a DNA test as a follow¨Cup. With that, the truth of whether or not they were truly rted would beid bare. Plus, with Serenity¡®s character, she would never do something like pose as her rtive just to gain riches by connection. ¡°Alright. ¡± Mrs. Franklin obediently went to prepare the nourishing food for Elisa. Elisa called her mother. ¡°Mom, where are you and Dad now?¡± Mrs. Stoneughed on the other end of the call. ¡°We¡®ll be home in half an hour. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Why, do you miss me?¡± Elisa pouted. ¡°I miss you so much, Mom! I think of you every day. At any given moment, I¡®m thinking of you. ¡± Mrs Stone was annused by her daughter and joked, ¡°I thought you only knew how to think of Zachary York. ¡± ¡°Mom, don¡®t mention him to me ever again. He already has a partner. ¡± At the mention of Zachary, Elisa¡®s smile vanished. That hit right where it hurt! Chapter 473 Chapter 473 Chapter 473 Mrs. Stone was stunned to hear that. ¡°Zachary has a partner?¡± ¡°He¡¯s already married and he¡¯s really good to his wife. He spoils her and is so protective of her that Clive can¡¯t even find out who she is. ¡± Mrs. Stone was silent for a moment. ¡°Since he already has a wife, you should give up then. He wasn¡¯t yours in the first ce. It¡¯s always been one¨Csided on your part. ¡± Mrs. Stone was very appreciative of Zachary, but she knew Zachary did not like her daughter at all. It was her daughter who just wanted to give it a try. Once she hit an insurmountable wall, she would have to turn back. ¡°Mom, I have to tell you about something. ¡± Elisa did not want her mother to bring Zachary up again. Every mention of him was a stab to her heart. It would be a lie to say it was not painful to suddenly find out the man she had loved for years was already married, and that she almost became the third party in a marriage, so she had no choice but to give up on her feelings abruptly. Now she tried not to bring up Zachary as best as she could to avoid feeling the pain. ¡°What about? I¡¯ll be reaching home very soon. Why don¡¯t we wait until I¡¯ve gotten home?¡± ¡°I think you¡¯ll be very happy to hear this. It¡¯s a new lead about my aunt. ¡± As expected, Mrs. Stone¡¯s expression changed and she asked in surprise, ¡°Elisa, there¡¯s a new lead? Where¡¯s your aunt now?¡± ¡°You know my friend Serenity, the one who trended on Twitter as the ¡®unfilial granddaughter¡± thest time? I sent the photo of you and Aunt as kids to her so she could help keep an eye out. Just now, when I called her, she said after she looked at it closely, she noticed her nephew Sonny, and my aunt have a few simrities inmon. ¡± After hearing that, Mrs. Stone paled. The whole Twitter trending issue spread pretty far at the time. Although she did not see the photo the Hunts had deleted, she had heard an overview of what happened from her daughter. The Hunt sisters were orphans. If Serenity¡¯s nephew looked like her sister, that meant Serenity¡¯s mother was her sister and that she had died fifteen years ago. Mrs. Stone did not want to believe it. It was hard to ept that the sister she had been looking for for decades had died a long time, fifteen years ago. She gripped the phone tightly and only managed to suppress her roiling emotions after a long moment. She asked, ¡°When you saw Serenity, did you notice if she looked like your aunt?¡± ¡°Nope, I think Serenity¡¯s mentioned before that she looks like her dad. ¡± Mrs. Stone was at a loss for words. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°Her sister looks like her mom, but her sister¡¯s so fat, no matter how I try, there¡¯s no way for me to see the simrity between her and my aunt. Mom, I think this time we might really have found her. The first time I met Serenity, I felt an inexplicable sense of familiarity toward her. ¡°The first time I saw Sonny, I liked him a lot. With my personality, I rarely like people right away. I think it might be the blood rtion. ¡± Moreover, because she and Serenity were cousins, she felt a sense of familiarity toward Serenity. ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny?¡± ¡°Serenity said there¡¯s been an incident with Sonny. Luckily, it wasn¡¯t too severe. They¡¯ve already left the hospital and returned home. Her sister is taking care of him at home. I just wanted to ask you when your estimated time of arrival was so I can bring you with me to Liberty¡¯s ce to visit him. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter if Sonny is my aunt¡¯s grandson. I just like him and after finding out something¡¯s happened to him, I want to see him. ¡± This was the first kid she was fond of. Elisa was filled with anger upon hearing he had been bullied into this state. Once Serenity had some free time, she would ask more details of her and punish that family again, making sure they would get their fill of it. She was not afraid of others calling her unreasonable and biased. In Wiltspoon, who did not know Elisa Stone was an unreasonably savage person? ¡°What happened to Sonny?¡± Elisa narrated Sonny¡¯s story to her mother. Mrs. Stone felt distressed upon hearing it. In her daughter¡¯s words, it did not matter whether Sonny was her sister¡¯s grandson or not. Purely hearing that a two¨Cyear¨Cold child had been beaten so badly was enough to distress anybody. Chapter 474 Chapter 474 Chapter 474 If Serenity and her sister really were her nieces¡­ At the thought of what her two nieces had been through, Mrs. Stone felt even more distressed. ¡°I¡®ll be home very soon. Wait for me. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. I¡®ll go with you to visit Sonny. ¡± This was the strongest lead yet. She definitely had to see the child that looked like her sister with her own eyes. TTTT Meanwhile at The Reptons, Chelsea was still trying to stop her parents from moving out of her home. ¡°Dad, Mom, please don¡®t move out! I won¡®t try to ask Serenity topensate anymore, okay?¡± Last night, after her parents returned, they started packing up their things, but Chelsea had managed to get them to stay one more night after much begging, crying, and promising She thought her parents would calm down after a night. She did not expect them to once again say they were moving out. The main issue was, her father was furious. George also advised, ¡°Father, Mother, Chelsea¡®s right. If you move out, there¡®ll be no one to take care of you? How could we rest assured then? If you stay here, as one big family, you can still enjoy the liveliness. ¡°Father, Matthew now understands what he has done wrong. Later, Chelsea and I will bring him to apologize to Sonny. I already disciplined him yesterday too. ¡± Mr. Brown sat on the sofa smoking his cigarette in silence. Beside him sat his packed luggage bag. Olivia looked at her husband and opened her mouth to speak, but hesitated and closed it once more. Hank did not dare say a single word. Yesterday, after reaching his sister¡®s home, his anger subsided a little after seeing his oldest nephew being disciplined pretty harshly by his brother ¨C inw. ¡°Dad. ¡± ¡°Be quiet. ¡± Mr. Brown coldly snapped and raised his head to re at his daughter. He felt even angrier seeing his son standing by the side silently. Matthew had indeed been taught a lesson by his son¨Cinw. The swelling had long gone down after ice was applied to Matthew¡¯s face. Although a little bit of bruising still remained, it was not noticeable if you did not look too closely. The blemishes left behind from being beaten with the belt would also no longer be a problem once medicine was applied. What about Sonny then? He had drummed up the brazenness to call his daughter¨Cinw and asked about Sonny¡¯s condition. The swelling on Sonny¡¯s face had not fully gone away and the bruising was still very obvious. The worst part was, Sonny had been traumatized, cried all nightst night, and had suffered a high fever. Comparing the two, Mr. Brown was more concerned about his grandson who carried hisst name. George¡¯s mother ran in from outside and said, ¡°George, Chelsea, those people from yesterday are here again. ¡± Hearing that, Chelsea said angrily, ¡°What are they here again for? Wasn¡¯t it enough that they smashed so many things in my house and caused my son to get a beating? What else do they want? Do they really want me to pay some kind ofpensation?¡± The police had previously told her that her son was the wrongdoer. If the injured party imedpensation for emotional harm, she had to pay up. At the thought of having to pay Serenity aspensation, Chelsea felt unbearably disgusted as if a fly had flown into her mouth. Chelsea stormed out. She exited just in time to see Serenity and her husband on either side of that venomous old Yorkdy, supporting her as she walked in. Seven or eight tall men followed behind them, who must have been Serenity¡¯s inws. The man who Serenity married had a prosperous family indeed. Moreover, each of them were handsome. Chelsea¡¯s anger was reduced by six fractions because of their bearing and aura. These people were ruthless. Yesterday, they had wrecked her home and caused her to lose tens of thousands of dors. Chapter 475 Chapter 475 Chapter 475 ¡°What are you guys here for again?¡± Chelsea demanded to know. She wanted to bar Serenity and the rest from entering her home, but she was too weak to stop them. Her husband, on the other hand, sang a different tune as he politely invited Serenity and the Yorks into the house. Matthew started ring at them furiously the moment he saw Serenity and her party. His father saw this and pinched him. ¡°You need to apologize honestlyter. ¡± George reminded his son in a lowered tone of voice, ¡°These people are not to be trifled with. ¡± They remained wholly unscathed even after smashing up the Reptons¡® home. The cops at the police station yesterday were not on their side at all. George was worried the Yorks had some hidden power and so decided to capitte, reminding his son to apologize genuinely. Actually, it was all George¡¯s overthinking. The police had watched the security camera recordings and felt Matthew had been overtly cruel, which was why they had decided to ignore the fact the Reptons¡® home was wrecked. Their thinking was, ¡®You beat up their kid to the point he had to be hospitalized, and yet you could not allow them to take their anger out on you?¡® People with no children may not have understood the parents¡® fury and pain, but those who had were furious when they saw that video. Matthew pursed his lips and refused to speak. He did not think he had done anything wrong. Lucas said Sonny hit him! He was Lucas¡¯s older brother. If someone hit his younger sibling, he naturally had to stand up for him. Who asked Sonny to hit Lucas? He did not beat Sonny to death either, so why did it seem like, to the adults, he hadmitted a heinous crime? Matthew¡¯s thoughts were in the same vein as his mother¡¯s. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Mr. Brown asked Serenity with a benign countenance, ¡°How¡¯s Sonny?¡± Chelsea interjected, ¡°Dad, look at Matthew. He¡¯s all recovered now, so Sonny must be all recovered too. ¡± Serenity red coldly at Chelsea. Chelsea said nastily, ¡°What are you ring at me for? Serenity, you guys smashed up my home yesterday. The sum¨C¡± Under her father¡®s re and her husband¡®s tugging, Chelsea finally shut her mouth. She sat down beside her husband indignantly. Seeing her inws pour sses of water for Serenity and her party while serving them fruits and snacks, Chelsea felt even more dissatisfied. ¡°The wound on Sonny¡®s face hasn¡®t healed yet. The ce he was kicked in is still bruised ck and blue, and he cried the whole nightst night while having a high fever. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. This morning, he had another dose of ibuprofen, and the fever went down. He only fell asleep then, also because he was too tired from crying. ¡± Distress appeared on Mr. Brown¡®s face. ¡°Did Liberty not send Sonny to the hospital?¡± Hank asked, his tone usatory. i Serenity and the Yorks looked at him in unison. Hank hesitated befi ?adding, ¡°Sonny has a fever. What¡®s wrong with sending him to the hospital? Isn¡®t that a choice a normal mother would make?¡± ¡°Hank Brown, you shut your mouth. Sonny is yours and Liberty¡®s child. You stayed out all nightst night, so what right do you have to criticize Liberty?¡± Mr. Brown ran out of patience and could not help but yell at his son. Once Hank was scolded until he no longer dared open his mouth, Serenity then said, ¡°We sent him to the hospital in the middle ofst night to see a doctor. The doctor prescribed some tranquilizers and asked us to buy a bottle of ibuprofen. He said we could only give Sonny the ibuprofen to reduce the fever once his temperature exceeded 38. 5 degrees Celsius. ¡± At first, the two sisters tried to cool Sonny down physically. However,ter on, his fever kept rising, so they had no choice but to feed Sonny the ibuprofen which managed to reduce his fever. Sonny was tired too from suffering through the night, and only managed to fall asleep then. ¡°My poor Sonny. ¡± Chapter 476 Chapter 476 Chapter 476 Olivia wailed and rubbed her eyes before she scolded Matthew. ¡°Matthew, Sonny is your cousin. How could you beat him half to death?¡± ¡°Mom, Matthew knows he did wrong. He¡¯s just a child who doesn¡¯t know how to hold back. ¡± Chelsea defended her son and said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity, Matthew was wrong for beating Sonny, and his father had already taught him a lesson yesterday. He knows his mistake. Later, I¡¯ll take him to buy some fruit to visit Sonny and apologize to him. ¡°In any case, we¡¯re still rtives. We won¡¯t press charges regarding how you smashed my home up, so you shouldn¡¯t insist on my son taking responsibility either. It¡¯s normal for children to fight, but it won¡¯t be nice if adults like us interfere. ¡°Besides, Lucas said that it was Sonny who hit him first. Matthew was just protecting his own. brother, just like how you¡¯re protecting your sister now. Serenity sneered. ¡°Chelsea, could your eyes be any more blind? Who was the one who made the first move? The surveince camera in your house captured it clearly. ¡± Chelsea choked. Once again, she scolded her husband in her heart, ¡®That useless man! He didn¡¯t delete the video in advance I let it fall into the hands of the police. ¡® ULL. With the surveince footage as evidence, she could not be justified in trying to push the me. ¡°Tell me. What¡¯s your purpose ining today?¡± Unable to put the me on Sonny¡¯s head, Chelsea changed the subject and asked why Serenity and her party was here. She nced over to the people from the York family. They did not have to do anything. Just sitting there like that was enough for them to appear intimidating. Her inws were terrified and did not dare speak. They were all useless! Chelsea scolded her inws in her heart. Seeing Grandma May, Chelsea could not help but say, ¡°What are you looking at? Why do I see you everywhere?¡± Grandma May raised her chin and did not answer. ¡°Are you mute?¡± * WW Chelsea hated how shameless the old woman acted yesterday. It almost caused her to suffer a big loss as a result of Serenity¡¯s counterattack. Grandma May continued to raise her chin and said arrogantly, ¡°I only talk to humans. ¡± ¡°You old hag, how dare Zachary and his brothers stood up. Each one of them red at Chelsea. Frightened, Chelsea instinctively leaned over to her husband¡¯s side. She was tongue¨Ctied. Zachary warned her coldly, ¡°I dare you to cuss at my nana one more time!¡± Nana was their beloved grandmother. Anyone who dared to disrespect her was the enemy of the entire York family. Mr. Brown stood up all of a sudden and walked over to her daughter. He pped her. There was a loud smack. Chelsea looked at her father in astonishment. ¡°Dad. ¡± ¡°Shut up if you don¡¯t know how to talk. No one will think you¡¯re mute if you just keep quiet!¡± Mr. Brown was furious at his daughter. Chelsea held her cheek that was hit by her father, feeling extremely aggrieved. Mr. Brown said apologetically to Grandma May, ¡°My daughter made a fool of herself. She speaks without thinking. You¡¯re a magnanimous person, so please don¡¯t lower yourself to argue with her. ¡± George echoed the words of his father¨Cinw, then invited Zachary and the others to sit down. ¡°Serenity, I won¡¯t deny that my son is in the wrong. It was my ipetence in teaching him. I solemnly apologize to you. Later, my wife and I will take Matthew to visit Sonny and make him apologize to Sonny. ¡°If you need us topensate for Sonny¡¯s medical expenses or mental damages, just tell us a number. We¡¯llpensate you fully. ¡± Chelsea was anxious and muttered in a low voice, ¡°Our house was smashed, and we lost tens of thousands. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. How are we going to get even with them?¡± Chapter 477 Chapter 477 Chapter 477 Chelsea was red at by her father and did not dare speak, but she desperately shot a look at her brother Hank received his sister¡®s plea for help. He cleared his throat and said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity. just let my sister take Matthew to apologize and leave it at that. I¡®m after all Sonny¡®s father and one of his guardians, so I think I have the right to decide. ¡± Serenity said sarcastically, ¡°Oh, so you do remember that you¡®re Sonny¡®s father? If other children¡®s fathers knew their son got bullied, they would drag a forty-meter-long broadsword to get even with the perpetrator with no second thoughts. ¡°You¡®re his father, but you want to settle the matter instead. Are you closer to your nephew than your own son?¡± Serenity then said to George, ¡°Sonny was rescued in the hospital and had a full¨Cbody examination which cost several thousand. I¡®ve brought the bill from the hospital so you won¡®t think I¡®m ripping you off. ¡°I came here today for two reasons. Firstly, I want you to bring your son to apologize and promise us that he won¡®t approach Sonny again in the future. The second is the issue ofpensation. Sonnvas traumatized. There¡®s no telling how much it will cost to heal his mental trauma. ¡°That¡®s an unknown amount of money. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Either way, you have topensate for the medical expenses from yesterday, and if Sonny needs subsequent treatment, you¡®ll be the ones footing the bill as well. We won¡®t ask much for supplements orpensation for mental damages. Including yesterday¡®s medical bill, please justpensate Sonny for fifty thousand for the time being. ¡± Chelsea jumped at that. ¡°Why don¡®t you just go rob a bank? Sonny is still so young. Why would he need supplements andpensation for mental damages? Matthew was beaten too. Why don¡®t you pay us for that?¡± Serenity retorted, ¡°Who was the one who beat your son?¡± Chelsea was speechless ¡°Tell the person who beat your son topensate you. In any case, we never touched your son. ¡± Chelsea was again at a loss for words After a moment, she said resentfully, ¡°You¡®re deliberately extorting us because my brother is about to divorce your sister. You want the money to give to your sister, right? ¡°Sonny is a two-year-old child. Even if he was frightened, he¡®ll be fine if you just cate and soothe him. Why would he need follow¨Cup treatments? It¡¯s not like he was scared silly. ¡± Serenity did not want to talk to someone like Chelsea and said coldly, ¡°Can someone else step in for negotiations?¡± She did not treat Chelsea as a human being. Chelsea was hopping mad. Grandma May did not treat her as a human being, and Serenity had also scolded her for not being a human. At that moment, officers from the police station came in. It was Zachary who called them over to be witnesses. After all, they reported to the police yesterday, but the matter had not been dealt with yet. Under the officers¡® mediation and witness, both sides signed an agreement. If Sonny required treatmentter, all costs would be borne by the Repton family. The Reptons were also required to bring Matthew to apologize in¨Cperson to Sonny, and they had to be stricter in disciplining their child in the future. Thepensation that the Hunts demanded from the Reptons remained unchanged. Serenity asked for fifty thousand, so they had to pay fifty thousand. As for the Repton family¡¯s losses, Mr. Brown was willing topensate them on Serenity¡¯s behalf. Although George ached for the money he was about to lose, he got ready to transfer the fifty thousand to Serenity in order to settle the matter. ¡°Even if you¡¯re going to transfer money, you shouldn¡¯t be transferring it to Serenity since she¡¯s not Sonny¡¯s guardian. Sonny¡¯s father is still here. Just transfer the money to Hank instead. ¡± Chelsea thought of transferring the money to her brother. That way, he could return the money to her after everyone left. ¡°Give it to Serenity. ¡± Mr. Brown snapped and asked his son¨Cinw to transfer the money to Serenity. He said, Serenity is Sonny¡¯s aunt. Ever since Sonny was born, Serenity endured all sorts of hardships to raise him up. I believe she¡¯spletely devoted to his well¨Cbeing. She won¡¯t take away this fifty thousand. ¡± ¡°L He red at his daughter again. Chelsea was afraid her father would p her again and did not dare to even squeak. Under the police officers¡® eyes, George got Serenity¡¯s bank ount and transferred fifty thousand with a note that it was topensate Sonny. Serenity epted the money without hesitation. Then, she transferred the fifty grand to her sister. Mr. Brown deliberately stood beside Serenity and watched her movements. Chapter 478 Chapter 478 Chapter 478 Seeing Serenity immediately transfering the money to his daughter-inw, Mr. Brown breathed a small sigh of relief. The money was given to his daughter-inw and would be used for his grandson, not for an outsider. If the money had gone to his son, it would have gone back to his daughter¡®s pocket. When they left the Reptons¡® residence, Rowan insisted on taking Zachary¡®s car. In the car, he said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity, why didn¡®t you call me when you all came over to fight yesterday? I was the only one excluded. ¡± Serenity turned her head and looked at her youngest brother¨Cinw, saying, ¡°You¡®re still a minor. We have to protect minors. ¡± ¡°Actually, both Matthew and I are minors. If we fight, it¡®ll just be two minors fighting. ¡± ¡°We didn¡®t have to do anything. Let his own father teach him a lesson. Didn¡®t you hear what his amazing mother said? She wanted us topensate her. She had no way to im from us solely because he was beaten by his father instead of us. ¡± ¡°Nana said I¡®d just be an essory even if I went. ¡± He pouted. ¡°Maybe I really am just an essory. ¡± Zachary asked in a low voice, ¡°What else do you want?¡± Rowan immediately shut his mouth. In reality, they came over today to support their sister-inw. The negotiations were fully managed by Serenity while Zachary did not interfere. Since Serenity was Sonny¡®s aunt, she was more qualified to seek justice for Sonny than any of them. Serenity saw Rowan being frightened by her husband and spoke up for him. ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t scare Rowan. He has good intentions. ¡± ¡°Yeah, Zachary only knows how to scare me. Serenity, you don¡¯t know this, but he¡¯s even stricter than my dad. Every time he sees me at home, he sends me a big box of workbooks and makes me solve problems endlessly. He just can¡®t see me idling around. ¡± Since the first time Rowan met Serenity, he firmly clung onto her and was convinced that his eldest brother would be wrapped around her fingers in the future. It turned out that he had a good eye. He was spot on! Now, Zachary was treating Serenity more favorably as time passed. ¡°I¡¯m doing this for your own good. Study well so you can get into a good university. ¡°Your academic performance is the worst out of the nine of us,¡± Zachary added coldly. Rowan paused. ¡°I¡¯m only shy of skipping grades like all of you did. Besides that, I¡¯ve always ranked among the top ten. There won¡¯t be a problem for me to get into a good universityter on. ¡± Among the nine brothers, eight of them were top students while he was the only underachiever. However, an ¡°underachiever¡± like him was actually a top student in the eyes of other students parents. It was truly exasperating! Rowan was reminded of ever since he started high school, all eight brothers of his would send him workbooks and mock exam papers to practice non¨Cstop whenever they returned to the old residence. He wanted to run away from home then. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. No, he just did not want all eight of his brothers toe back to the old residence. The old residence did not wee them! Serenity was stunned. ¡°Rowan, did all your brothers skip grades?¡± ¡°Yeah, all of them skipped a few grades. I¡¯m the only one advancing one step at a time. ¡± Serenity was speechless. She wanted to have Zachary¡¯s babies. They were guaranteed to be top students too! Chapter 479 Chapter 479 Chapter 479 Serenity was shocked. She remembered how desperately she studied back in high school to be epted into a reputable university. However, Zachary and his brothers could easily get into a good university and even skipped a few grades. ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t look like you¡¯ve been hit to the point of doubting your existence. The person who¡¯s been hit the hardest is me. ¡± Serenity thought about it and agreed. Rowan was the most pitiful one here. Sheughed and said, ¡°Don¡¯t be discouraged, Rowan. I believe you can also get into a good university. You can do it!¡± ¡°I have to get into the same university that my brothers went to. If I fail, I¡¯ll¡­ retake the exam. ¡± He wanted to say that if he failed, he would p himself twice. However, after thinking about it, it was better not to put his foot in his mouth, so he changed his mind. + Zachary turned to nce at his brother before returning to focusing on driving. ¡°If you fail, don¡¯t say that you¡¯re my brother. ¡± Rowan was speechless. ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t give Rowan too much pressure. ¡°The boy likes to y games and isn¡¯t worried about his studies at all. He needs some pressure. ¡± Rowan paused before saying, ¡°Not everyone is as disciplined as you, Zack. ¡± He was self¨Cdisciplined to the point that if it were not for Nana worrying, he probably would not get a wife for the rest of his life. Zachary snorted coldly. Rowan did not dare speak again. Beep beep Zachary¡¯s phone received a new message. He slowed down slightly and checked it. It was from Mrs. Lane. [Mr. Zachary, Mrs. Stone ising over with Ms. Stone. Don¡¯te upstairs when you send the Missus back] He deleted the message after reading it. Elisa and her mother were moving quickly indeed. He continued to drive as if nothing had happened. A few momentster, he sent a message to Josh. ¡°Call me once every ten minutes. ¡± Josh was puzzled upon receiving this message, but he caught on after thinking about it. After the group exited the expressway, Callum stopped the car and said to Zachary and Serenity, ¡°We¡®ll split ways here. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Callum. ¡± Serenity thanked him graciously. Callum smiled and said, ¡°We¡®re family, Serenity. Don¡®t mind the courtesy. Just tell us if you need to use us brothers in the future. ¡± Serenity exceptionally liked this kind of family and their style. All the brothers, nephews, and uncles had a good rtionship. No matter who was in trouble, as long as someone called for help, the brothers would go to their rescue. Grandma May said before that she would not introduce a bad man to Serenity. This text is property of N?/velD/rama.Org. The old woman got out of the car and exchanged ces with Rowan. Rowan reluctantly went into his second brother¡®s car. He wanted to follow his grandmother to live in Zachary¡®s small home. They must be very happy every day with Serenity around. When would Zachary bring Serenity back to the old residence and reveal his identity? He would love to live with his sister¨Cinw protecting him. Even if the sky fell, his sister¨Cinw would hold it up. ¡°Seren, you didn¡®t sleep wellst night. Why don¡®t you go home first to rest?¡± Grandma May felt heartbroken seeing the dark circles under Serenity¡®s eyes. ¡°Your sister and Sonny need to rest too. Cecilia is there to take care of them, so don¡®t you worry. ¡± Zachary received the information from Mrs. Lane and so did Grandma May. Audrey was well aware of who Grandma May was. Back then, Grandma May tried to poach Audrey from Stone Corporation. Later, when she learned that Audrey became lovers with the sessor of the Stone family, she lamented for a long time that she acted wee bit toote. Although she failed to pull Audrey over to be an elite of York Corporation, it did not stop the old woman from appreciating Audrey. Since Audrey had gone to Bright Boulevard, Grandma May could not go since the former would recognize her. It was all that brat, Zachary¡¯s fault that the whole family had to y along with his act. Chapter 480 Chapter 480 Chapter 480 Grandma May was actually in denial of her feelings of schadenfreude. Serenity stayed up the wholest night and only drank a cup of coffee this morning, so she was feeling tired now. ¡°I¡¯ll call my sister and ask her how Sonny is. ¡± After the call, she learned that Elisa and her mother had visited Sonny with gifts. However, Serenity knew the main purpose of their visit. ¡°Sis, did Mrs. Stone say anything?¡± Serenity did not reveal the other matter to her sister. ¡°She didn¡¯t say anything. She just felt heartbroken that Sonny had suffered. Elisa scolded the Reptons family for a good half an hour. ¡± Her sister¡¯s friends and inws were more powerful than her own husband and inws, which made her even more sad. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. How blind was she to have married a scumbag like Hank? How dare a father like himpete with her for Sonny¡¯s custody? When the divorcewsuit went to court, she would provide the photos of Sonny¡¯s injuries from the physical abuse to the judge. She believed that the judge would give Sonny¡¯s custody to her for the child¡¯s sake. ¡°Mrs. Stone¡­ seemed unwell. Her face was horribly pale. They didn¡¯t stay long before Ms. Stone quickly took her mother away. ¡± The only thing that Liberty noticed was off about Audrey was that thetter¡¯s face grew paler by the minute, which startled her. Elisa was also shocked and quickly left with her mother. After listening to Liberty, Serenity was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°Liberty, our mom might be the sister who Mrs. Stone has been searching for for decades. ¡± }) Cough cough ¨C The olddy in the back seat coughed violently when she heard what Serenity had just uttered. Serenity turned her head and asked with concern, ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Nana? Is the AC too cold?¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s too dry, so it¡¯s easy to get a cough. ¡± Grandma May did not dare say that she was startled by the new information. Zachary drove calmly and casually turned off the air¨Cconditioner. When he first learned that his mother-inw whom he had never met could turn out to be Audrey¡®s sister, he was frightened too. Seeing his nana spooked now, he felt slightly better himself. Liberty was silent. ¡°I¡®ll talk to you about this when I get back. How¡®s Sonny?¡± ¡°He woke up once, and I gave him some milk, but he only drank half of it. He fell back asleep as I held him. ¡± ¡°Did he get another fever?¡± ¡°Not now. ¡± Serenity was relieved. ¡°Seren, you were up all night too. Sonny is fine now, so go back and get some sleep. ¡± Liberty¡®s heart not only ached for her son, but also her sister. Her head was also hurting after staying up all night. ¡°Okay. Call Mrs. Lane if you need any help. I¡®ll go over in the evening. ¡± The sisters were not in a hurry to verify whether their mother was Audrey¡®s sister. That decision was in Audrey¡®s hands. Serenity, who was reassured, fell asleep before they reached Brynfield. As Zachary parked the car when they arrived, Grandma May said, ¡°You carry Serenity upstairs. I¡®ll go for a stroll. ¡± She wanted to let her grandson and Serenity be alone. Zachary hummed in response and carried Serenity who was still sleeping out of the car. His grandmother was someone who could not stay still in one ce. Since she had legs, she could go wherever she wanted. ¡°Hurry up, Zack. ¡± She called out to her grandson meaningfully. Zachary¡¯s face tensed, but he remained silent and carried Serenity inside As he went in, the old woman muttered, ¡°I¡®d like to see how you clean up your mess. Hah, even you won¡®t be able to solve this easily. It¡®s your fault for acting proud and lying to your wife!¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡®Is she really my grandmother?¡® Chapter 481 Chapter 481 Chapter 481 Zachary went back to their little home with Serenity in his arms. As soon as the door was open, the pet dog rushed over. ¡°Get out of the way!¡± Zachary gave a hushed roar, and the little thingy on the ground obediently, not daring toe any closer. It knew that its male owner did not like it very much. Fortunately, he did not abuse it or deprive it of food and water. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Ring ring ring. Zachary¡®s phone rang. He was still carrying Serenity and could not spare a hand to answer the phone. The phone stopped ringing. It should be from Josh. Zachary instructed him to call every ten minutes so he would have an excuse to leave. However, there was no need for that now. Audrey and her daughter had already left Liberty¡®s house. He carried Serenity back to her room, ced her on the bed, and covered her with the quilt before calling Josh. ¡°You don¡®t have to call anymore. ¡± ¡°I don¡®t? I was thinking about whether to spam you. ¡± Zachary¡®s lips twitched. ¡°Have you eaten? Do you want to eat together?¡± ¡°No. Why aren¡®t you asking Ms. Sox instead?¡± ¡°Wouldn¡®t it be humiliating if she rejected me? We exchanged numbers after we met, but she didn¡®t take the initiative to contact me. I don¡®t know what she thinks of me. ¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°I can understand now why my nana feels disappointed in me. ¡± Josh was stumped, but he managed to ask, ¡°So¡­ Should I ask her out for a meal now?¡± ¡°It¡®s up to you. Anyway, you have to be thick¨Cskinned when chasing your wife. ¡± ¡°Looks like you¡®re pretty thick¨Cskinned now. ¡± Zachary touched his face. ¡°I haven¡®t measured, so I don¡®t know how thick it is. ¡± Tosh burst intoughter. ¡°Serenity is definitely the woman I admire most in the world. There¡¯s no one like her!¡± ¡°Get lost!¡± Zachary snapped at him and hung up the phone. He sat down at the edge of Serenity¡®s bed, quietly looking at her sleeping face. The lines on her face had loosened up. He leaned down, pressed a kiss on her cheek, and whispered softly in her ear, ¡°I admire you too, Serenity. You took half my soul away so easily. ¡± He gently touched her face again. The tenderness in his eyes was undisguised. After lingering for a good long while, he finally left her room. Serenity slept until the evening and only woke up from hunger. When she opened her eyes to see the familiar environment, she knew that she had fallen asleep in the car and was carried back by Zachary. Where was he? The door was suddenly pushed open. Zachary came in wearing a floral apron. It seemed like he had just been busy in the kitchen. ¡°You¡®re awake?¡± He walked over and asked in a warm voice. His eyes when he looked at her seemed to be able to steal her heart and soul. How could she have thought that his eyes were sharp and cold in the past? ¡°What time is it now?¡± ¡°Six in the evening. ¡± ¡°I slept that long?¡± She rubbed her stomach. ¡°No wonder I feel hungry. ¡± Zachary gave her ab for her to brush her hair and said, ¡°You didn¡®t eat at noon, so it¡®s only natural you feel hungry. ¡± She slept soundly, so he did not wake her up for lunch. ¡°Did my sister call?¡± ¡°No, but I called Mrs. Lane. Sonny doesn¡¯t have a fever anymore. He¡®s just sleeping. ¡± Serenity was relieved. His care and attention to Sonny warmed her heart. She could not help but like him more with each passing day. Even if her feelings started from gratitude, the affection she felt for him was real. ¡°Do you want to shower before eating?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll showerter. I¡¯m staying at my sister¡¯s ce tonight. ¡± Zachary was silent. Serenity leaned closer to him. Her eyes twinkled as she teased him, ¡°Why? Can¡®t bear for me to leave?? Chapter 482 Chapter 482 Chapter 482 Zachary said stubbornly, ¡°No!¡± ¡°Really?¡± ¡°Really!¡± Serenity straightened her back and said with a regretful expression, ¡°I was thinking that if you didn¡®t want me to leave, I could tell Mrs. Lane to stay at my sister¡®s house while I apany you. Since you don¡®t need it, I¡®d better go keep my sisterpany. f ¡°The weather is getting colder. It sure feels like winter is approaching. I always feel ufortable sleeping alone during this time. ¡± Serenity sighed. Zachary was speechless. ¡®Is she implying that if I said I didn¡®t want her to leave, she would hug the pillow and quilt and hog my bed? Serenity was still carrying a regretful look. She reached out and patted his face twice, before trailing her finger down to his neck, and finally rubbing his chest. When Zachary¡®s eyes deepened and he stared intently at her, she withdrew her wandering hand. ¡°I¡®m hungry. Let¡®s eat. I want to see if the dishes my husband cooked for me are any good. ¡± Serenity was done teasing him and left. She walked past Zachary. He turned around at once and wrapped his arms around her waist from behind. ¡°Do you think you can leave after teasing me?¡± He teased with his husky voice with his hands around her waist like an iron grip. She could not break free from him even though she practiced kickboxing, ¡°Loosen up,¡± Serenity said as she could not pry his hands away. Zachary nted a kiss on her cheek before he loosened his grip. She turned around while in his embrace and looked up. Her pretty face was flushed from the teasing, and her beautiful eyes twinked like stars in the dark night. In Zachary¡®s eyes, she looked incredibly seductive at that moment. ¡°Serenity. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡± ¡°I like it when you call me Seren. ¡± ¡°You often call me Mr. York,¡± Zachary said that with a bit of grievance. She did not address him intimately. ¡°I¡®m already calling you Zachary. How about I call you Zacky instead?¡± Zachary was silent briefly before saying, ¡°You can just call me Zachary. ¡± Zacky. Geez, I have goosebumps just hearing that name. ¡® ¡°Haha. ¡± Serenity already knew that he would not let her call him Zacky. Zachary was a little aggravated. When she got carried awayughing, he sealed her lips with his. After the kiss, he said in her ear hoarsely, ¡°Stay home tonight. ¡± ¡°Hm?¡± ¡°Didn¡®t you say it¡®s cold and you¡®re ufortable when sleeping alone? I¡®ll let you use my warmth. ¡± Zachary¡®s handsome face blushed inexplicably when those words left his lips. Serenity was amazed. The way he looked when he blushed was just too adorable! ¡°I haven¡®t figured out if what I feel for you is gratitude or affection. ¡± Zachary red at her and gritted her teeth. ¡°You¡®re really good at raining on other people¡¯s parades!¡± ¡°Thanks for thepliment!¡± As she said that, Serenity¡¯s stomach was heard growling. ¡°I¡®m hungry, Zachary. Let¡®s eat. ¡± Zachary did not let her go. ¡°Be good, Zacky. Let¡®s go out and eat. ¡± Zachary raised his chin. What an arrogant guy. Helpless, Serenity tiptoed and kissed him on the lips. She thenughed and said, ¡°I surrender. I admit defeat. Zachary York, you¡®re the best man in the world. ¡± ¡°I¡®ll only be the best man in your heart. ¡± He softened and let her go. After regaining freedom, she immediately took his warm andrge hand and pulled him out. She casually responded, ¡°You¡®re already the best man in my heart for now. ¡± No one knew if anyone would beat him in the future. Chapter 483 Chapter 483 Chapter 483 After flirting with each other before and over dinner, Zachary showered Serenity with meticulous care. Serenity was a little overwhelmed by it. At the same time though, she thought, ¡®Sure enough, a good husband has to be trained by onesell. ¡®I hope the husband that I¡®ve trained won¡¯t be snatched away by others. ¡¯ The couple went to Liberty¡®s house together after dinner. Sonny had woken up but refused to y by himself. He stuck to his mother like a piece of gum. Serenity was the only other person he allowed to hold him. He even refused Mrs. Lane to carry him. ¡°Liberty, are you going to work tomorrow?¡± Serenity asked while she was hugging her nephew. Liberty looked at Sonny and deliberated before saying, ¡°Seren, I want to quit and start my own business. ¡± She was feeling uneasy with the way Sonny was now. However, she had just started her job. It would be easy to lose her job if she took a leave of absence. After a day of consideration, she decided to take her son with her to start her own business. ¡°Have you thought about which line of work?¡± Liberty said tentatively, ¡°I want to open a breakfast restaurant. What do you think? Apart from working a desk job, the only thing I¡®m confident in is my cooking skills, so I want to open a breakfast restaurant. I¡¯ll only be busy in the mornings and can rest in the afternoon to take care of Sonny. ¡± ¡°Having your business during breakfast hours requires you to get up early. It¡®ll be exhausting. Can you manage by yourself?¡± Serenity coulde over to help at first, but she could note by every day. ¡°I¡®ll start small and only serve toasts and pancakes. When I earn money, I¡®ll get a shop front and hire someone to help. ¡± Zachary, who had been keeping silent, supported Liberty¡®s idea to start a small business. He interjected, ¡°Liberty, do you have your eye on a location yet? Where will your stall be? How much capital do you need?¡± ¡°It¡®ll be best if I can rent a ce in the market, but it¡®ll be difficult. Otherwise, I¡¯d like a ce that¡¯s nearrgepany buildings. It¡¯s best if thepany does not have a cafeteria, but those locations are already taken up. ¡± Unless someone relocated. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Serenity said, ¡°Don¡®t worry about that now, Liberty. You have to research the market first. If there¡¯s really no stalls, we can get a store front instead. If you don¡®t have enough capital, I¡®ll lend it to you. Hire someone else to help you. You still need to take care of Sonny, so don¡®t tire yourself out. ¡± ¡°Yeah. I¡¯ll take tomorrow off. Let¡¯s wait until Sonny gets better. ¡± If thepany was understanding about her taking time off despite just working for a few days, she would continue working for a while. However, if thepany could not be understanding, then she would have to resign. ¡°I want to talk to Hank again about the divorce. If I was given a choice, I¡®d rather talk it out with him as I don¡®t want to live with him for a moment longer, and going through the divorcewsuit the evidence that Za ped to obtain would take a while. jalle FPLAIN leSUIT IS ¡°If the talk doesn¡®t work out, then I¡®ll still file for divorce. ¡± Serenity exchanged looks with her husband and nodded. ¡°You talk to Hank again. It¡®s best if you two cane to an agreement regarding the divorce. It¡®ll be quicker too. Don¡®t show him the evidence of his extra ie, but you can scare him a little. ¡°Also, you can go find Jessica and talk to her to let her pressure Hank He might be willing to take a step back in order to keep his job and marry her as soon as possible. ¡± Liberty thought about it and felt that her sister had a point. ¡°If you¡®re not free, I¡®ll ask Jessica out for you and talk to her. ¡± ¡°No need, I¡®ll talk to her myself. I¡®ll take the next two days off to care for Sonny at home. I¡®ll ask Jessica out tomorrow at noon. ¡± Since Liberty did not need her help, Serenity did not insist. Chapter 484 Chapter 484 Chapter 484 ¡°Seren, you should go to work tomorrow or open your shop. You don¡¯t have toe over. I can take care of Sonny. ¡± Serenity was still worried. ¡°Then I¡®ll ask Mrs. Lane to stay here. ¡± Mrs. Lane was hired with the priority to take care of Sonny during the day anyway, and cleaning up Zachary¡®s and her home was secondary. Liberty felt a little embarrassed. Her brother¨Cinw hired Mrs. Lane because he did not want his wife to be tired, but Mrs. Lane was always helping her instead. ¡°We¡®re sisters, Liberty. We should support each other. ¡± Serenity did not want her sister to be burdened psychologically. ¡°As long as Sonny and you are doing well, nothing else is more important. ¡± ¡°You pay Mrs. Lane¡®s sry for now. I¡®ll pay you back when I¡®m back on my feet. ¡± Liberty was grateful for her sister¡®s help, but she could not take it for granted. Zachary said warmly, ¡°Liberty, we¡®re family. Don¡®t be such a stranger. Serenity and I have a good ie now with no children yet, so we don¡®t have manymitments in our lives. You don¡®t have to worry abc it Mrs. Lane¡®s sry. We won¡®t treat her poorly. ¡± Liberty was growing more pleased with her brother¨Cinw. Her sister was a little luckier than she was, Zachary was a responsible man. At nine in the evening, the young couple left Bright Boulevard. Grandma May was already sitting in the hall, watching TV. She was immediately overjoyed when she saw the couple walking in while holding hands. Zachary felt a little unnatural, but Serenity had a calm face. They were husband and wife. What was strange about holding hands? ¡°Where did you go, Nana? I didn¡®t see you in the afternoon. ¡± Serenity only let go of Zachary¡®s hand after walking up to the olddy, taking a seat beside her. ¡°I met up with my friends for a chat. Have you just returned from your sister¡®s ce? Is Sonny better?¡± Serenity nodded. ¡°He¡®s much better. I told Mrs. Lane to stay there and help my sister take care of Sonny together. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. By the way, you mentioned that Mrs. Stone¡®s sister and Sonny look alike¡­ Mrs. Stone went to your sister¡®s house and saw Sonny. Did she say anything about it?¡± Grandma May was more interested in knowing if Serenity¡®s deceased mother was the long lost sister whom Audrey had been looking for for decades. ¡°Mrs. Stone didn¡®t say anything when she went to my sister¡®s ce. She just turned really pale and scared Elisa, so thetter quickly took her home. I think¡­ maybe my mom was the sister she has been looking for. ¡± 1 Audrey was pale because she had difficulty epting the reality that her sister had been dead for fifteen years. She spent decades looking for her only sister, but when she finally found a lead, she was told that her sister passed away fifteen years ago. No one would be able to ept that. ¡°The decision lies in Mrs. Stone¡®s hand now. My sister and I can¡®t do anything. ¡± Serenity¡®s mood became depressed while discussing this. Grandma May nodded. ¡°Mrs. Stone should take some time to ept the fact that her sister might have passed away. She¡®ll definitelye to you two and offer to do a DNA test in a few days. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡± She patted Serenity¡®s hind and saidfortingly, ¡°Seren, no matter what the result is, we¡®ll ept it calmly. If your mother really is Mrs. Stone¡®s sister, although she can¡®t reconnect with her sister anymore, at least she still has rtives looking for her and thinking about her. She can then rest in peace. ¡± Serenity desperately blinked away the tears welling up in her eyes. She thought, ¡®If Mom and Mrs. Stone really were sisters, and if they met earlier, maybe Mom wouldn¡®t have died in that ident. ¡¯ It was the living who were left behind toment. Chapter 485 Chapter 485 Chapter 485 Afterforting Serenity, Grandma May yawned gracefully. She put down the TV remote control, got up, and said to the young couple, ¡°I¡®ll head in to rest up. I¡®m old and can¡®t stay upte. ¡± She took a few steps and stopped before turning around to ask Serenity, ¡°Seren, should I bring your pillow out?¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°No need. There are pillows in the guest room for me. ¡± Grandma May nced at her grandson twice, but did not say anything. She proceeded into Serenity¡®s room. By the time Serenity went in to take a shower, the olddy was already snoring loudly. Serenity was speechless. Ten minutester. She came out of the room in her pajamas. Just after closing the door, she saw her man in his robe, leaning against the door of his room with his arms across his chest. ¡°Not sleeping yet? You have to work tomorrow. ¡± Serenity casually said to him, pretending to not remember teasing him earlier. She walked past him toward the guest room. However, when she pushed open the door to the guest room, she was dumbfounded. The bedsheet was gone. The quilt was gone. The pillow was also gone. She had clearly bought a set of bedding products. Where did they go? Were they stolen? That did not seem right, a thief would not just steal bedding. She turned her head to look at the proud man who was still standing against the door. He must have taken advantage of the time she was in the shower to take away all the bedding in the guest room. Zachary kept silent and simply looked at her. Serenity turned around and walked back toward him. She paused in front of him and then walked into his room. While entering, she said, ¡°I remember a certain someone mentioned that he¡¯d keep the door of the room open for me to search for the agreement. ¡± Zachary waited for her to enter the room before following her. He closed the door behind him and said calmly, ¡°Be my guest. If you can¡®t find it, then don¡®t bring up the agreement again in the future, because it doesn¡®t exist. ¡± Apart from the safe that had not been open yet, she had already scoured every inch of the room Serenity pretended to casually rummage through the room before heading over to his safe and patted it. ¡°Open it and let me see. You must have hidden it here. ¡± Zachary walked over and unlocked it. Serenity looked at him before opening the safe. There was only one thing inside¨Ca small document. It was the marriage license of the two of them. There was nothing else. She removed the marriage license before inspecting the safe. Content is ? by N?velDrama.Org. There really was nothing left. ¡°There¡®s not even a penny here. What did you buy a safe for?¡± Zachary said as a matter of fact, ¡°To keep our marriage license. ¡± ¡°If you¡®d like to put money inside, I¡®ll go to the bank tomorrow after work to get some cash and bring it back to ce it in the safe. You can use it whenever you want to. ¡± ¡°There¡®s still money in the household expenses card you gave me. ¡± Serenity flipped over the marriage license to look at their wedding photo, which appeared very unnatural ¡°Look at your face back then. You¡®re like an iceberg. I was worried I¡®d freeze and turn into an ice sculpture after taking the wedding photos. ¡± Zachary sat down beside her and took a look at the photo on the license. ¡°You weren¡®t particrly enthusiastic either. The photographer kept telling you to lean closer, but you were frozen stiff. You didn¡®t budge an inch. ¡± Serenity was speechless. It was the pot calling the kettle ck ¡°Seren, don¡®t mention the agreement again. It¡®s gone. Even if it wasn¡¯t gone, I would have probably flushed it down the drain already. ¡± Serenity looked at him and dove into the deep abyss of pondering what he could mean He was going back on his word, that was what he meant. He took advantage of that night when She was a little drunk to destroy her copy of the agreement. He was afraid she would wake up and look for it, so he destroyed his own copy as well. When she remembered to ask him, he shamelessly denied it and said that she had been worrying too muchtely and was hallucinating. He was clearly saving himself from shooting himself in the foot again. Serenity mulled over his words but did not poke at his lies. Chapter 486 Chapter 486 Chapter 486 Serenity climbed into his bed andy downfortably, saying, ¡°I¡®ve only slept in your bed once, but I feel like it¡®s particrly warm. Maybe it¡®s my imagination. ¡± She pulled the quilt up to cover herself and smiled. ¡°Good night, Zachary. ¡± Zachary¡®s dark eyes shed. He stared at her for a long time before suddenly lifting the quilt off her and was about to pin her down. However, she sat up and removed herself from the bed at once. She put on her slippers and left. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary reached out to pull her back. ¡°I, uh¨CI need to use the bathroom. ¡± Aunt Flo might havee to ruin the atmosphere. The man did not understand. ¡°There¡®s a bathroom in my room. ¡± ¡°Your bathroom doesn¡®t have what I need. I¡®lle back to sleep in your bed after I use the bathroom, but I won¡®t be able to sleep with you for a while. ¡± Serenity pinched his face regretfully. ¡°Fatten up a little. ¡± No matter how slow Zachary was, he finally understood and slowly let go of his hand, letting her return to her room. A whileter, Serenity re¨Centered his room. Zachary had his back to her while hugging a pillow with both arms, seemingly sulking. Serenity hesitated and thought, ¡®Should I sleep in a different room? Maybe I should. I¡¯ll go back and sleep with Nana for the night. ¡® She turned around to leave. ¡°You¡®re not even going to let me hold you?¡± Huh? Serenity stopped in her tracks and turned to look at the man who was sulking ¡°I¡®m afraid you¡®ll have a hard time if you hold me. ¡± ¡°It¡®s better than sleeping alone. ¡± Since he was not afraid of being tormented, she did not hold back Serenity then cheerfully returned to Zachary¡®s side, lifting the quilt while saying, ¡°C¡®mon, don¡®t give me that look. You look like a moping kid now. ¡± ¡°I¡®m a man. ¡± ¡°Fine, a moping man. ¡± Zachary suddenly reached out and pinned her down. He leaned in and kissed her fiercely before he felt better. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Embracing his wife, he asked in a low and husky voice, ¡°How many days?¡± ¡°Seven plus three. ¡± ¡°That long?¡± ¡°I cherish my body. If you don¡®t want to wait, we¡®ll continue to sleep in separate rooms. ¡± It was not appropriate to do anything right after Aunt Flo left. Her body was hers. She would not harm her body for the sake of his pleasure. Zachary held her tightly. ¡°Don¡®t make it sound like I¡®m a beast. Go to sleep. You have to work tomorrow. ¡± He pressed a gentle kiss on her forehead. ¡°Good night. ¡± ¡°Good night. ¡± Serenity adjusted her sleeping position and soon fell asleep peacefully. Meanwhile, in the Stone family¡®s vi. Audrey sat on the bed, holding an old yellow photo she had kept for decades. As she looked at her sister in the photo and thought that thetter might no longer be alive, her eyes started to redden again. Arge hand reached out and took the photo from her hands. ¡°You¡®ve been staring at it all day. You refuse to eat and drink, and not even speak. Are you trying to worry me to death?¡± Darrell was feeling distressed as he handed a tissue to his wife. ¡°It¡®s yet to be determined, but you¡®re already crying. Maybe it¡®s not true this time either. ¡± The DNA test was not carried out yet, so it was still up in the air if Hunt sisters were truly his sister-in- law¡®s daughters. Chapter 487 Chapter 487 Chapter 487 Audrey took the tissue handed to her by her husband and wiped her tears. She then finally said, ¡°Sonny does look somewhat simr to my sister. His mother, Liberty, would resemble my sister more if she was a little thinner. ¡°When Elisa first met Serenity, she said she had a feeling of wanting to be close to thetter. I had that feeling too when I met Liberty and her son. ¡°I think it¡®s because of our blood rtion. ¡°Darrell, maybe this time, I have really found my sister¡­¡± Audrey¡¯s tears slipped down again when she thought about the fact that her sister was long gone. ¡°But she¡®s no longer here. She died fifteen years ago. It¡®s no wonder I couldn¡®t find her despite searching for so long. How could I find her when she¡®s no longer in this world?¡± Darrellforted her. ¡°It¡®s just a feeling. Sometimes, fate acts in mysterious ways. Don¡¯t cry yet and wait for the DNA test. ¡± If his sister¨Cinw whom he had never met was dead, Darrell would feel shaken too. When he first met his wife, she was still just an employee of Stone Group, but she had already started searching for her sister. Decades passed but she never gave up. She also let her children take over and help her continue the search. Countless years of perseverance and faith suddenly turned into nothingness. It was normal for his wife to find it difficult to ept. ¡°My intuition tells me that Liberty and Serenity are my sister¡®s daughters. My sister isn¡®t here anymore, and her daughters are still living such a hard life¡­ Fortunately, they¡®re strong like I was. ¡± Back then, she was only eight years old and could not raise her sister. The Hunt sisters had it slightly better. At least they got their parents¡® life insurance payouts. Although their horrid rtives took most of them, the town council fortunately got two hundred thousand for the sisters. Liberty was also fifteen years old that year and was able to somewhat take the burden of raising her sister. Elisa said that Serenity treated her sister exceptionally well. Audrey thought, ¡°The two sisters rely on each other and after going through so many storms and seeing the fickleness of human nature, Liberty was both a sister and a mother to Serenity. Serenity would be an ingrate if she wasn¡¯t good to her sister. ¡¯ ¡°Let¡®s do the DNA test first. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Audrey wiped her tears again and nodded, ¡°T¡®ll visit Serenity tomorrow and ask for a DNA test with her. ¡± She did not choose to do it with Liberty because thetter had to take care of Sonny. She was aware about the sisters¡® situation through her daughter. At present, Liberty was in a low period of her life, and she was depending on her younger sister, so Audrey would only ask Serenity to cooperate with her for a DNA test. ¡°Let Elisa go with you tomorrow. She has a good rtionship with Serenity. ¡± Darrell recalled how his daughter often met Serenity after getting acquainted with her, regardless of her status. He was also pleased with his daughter¡®s change of nature, but he never thought that their blood rtion yed a role. ¡°All right. ¡± ¡°Keep this matter under wraps for now, lest other people tamper with the results. ¡± Darrell reminded his wife. Their family was the second most powerful family in Wiltspoon after the Yorks. Many people faked their identities to try and establish connections with the Stone family because they knew that Audrey had always been looking for her sister. The Hunt sisters had a simple background now, but they were surrounded by too many outrageous people. Who knew if they would do anything to tamper with the results or stop the sisters from acknowledging their rtionship with Audrey? Case in point, the Hunt family. They not only took away the six hundred thousand payout, but also seized the properties andnds belonging to Serenity¡®s family. Then, they drove the sisters away and forbade them from returning to their hometown to visit their parents¡® graves. Worse still, they even moved the graves without informing the sisters. Now, the Hunt sisters did not know where their parents¡¯ graves were. They could not even pay their respects. It was no wonder Serenity mercilessly refused when the family repeatedly went to beg for reconciliation. The hate ran too deep They had not experienced the suffering of the Hunt sisters, so they could use moral ckmail. I know. ¡± Audrey said, ¡°I¡¯m not worried about them tampering with the results. I¡®m just afraid that if we make a statement and the test turns out negative, others will use it as an excuse to attack Serenity. ¡± LT Darrell let out a hum andforted his wife. ¡°Don¡®t think too much about it. We¡®ll know whether it¡®s true or false in a few days. Go to sleep first, or shall I go downstairs to make you some food? You can sleep after having a bite. ¡± Chapter 488 Chapter 488 Chapter 488 ¡°I have no appetite. ¡± ¡°You haven¡®t eaten or drank anything all day. Do you know how worried I am about you? Your children are worried too. Even Anthony came back after hearing that you were feeling down. ¡± They had three children. Their eldest was mature and steady, their second-born was never at home, and their youngest was the apple of their eye, who used to hover around Zachary all day in the past and only revert to her normal self a few days ago. ¡°Think of it as me going on a diet. ¡± Audrey theny down on the bed. ¡°I¡®m going to sleep. ¡± Darrell was helpless when it came to Audrey. She did not want to eat, and he could not coax her into it. Her temper had always been very stubborn, and their daughter took after her. She loved Zachary for many years and refused to give up no matter how many people persuaded her to. She only turned around after hitting a dead end. The night passed without a word. The next day, it was drizzling again, turning the already cool morning into a chill. Zachary woke up before Serenity. The woman beside him got cold in the second half of the night and burrowed into his arms unawares. She actually treated him as a warmer. He lowered his head and looked at the alluring woman who was still curled up against him. Zachary¡®s eyes softened. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Opening his eyes and seeing his favorite woman by his side turned out to be such a blissful feeling. After staring at Serenity for a while, he gently pulled away and got out of bed for fear of waking her up. He walked to the window, pulled open the curtains, and looked at the sky outside. The sky was overcast because of the rain. It was not suitable for him to go out for his morning run. Alter standing there for a moment, he turned around and walked away. Ten minutester, he came out of the room and went straight into the kitchen before leaving it in less than a minuteter. He walked to the balcony to call Jim. When Jim answered, he ordered in a low voice, ¡°Go over to the hotel and pack three servings of breakfast for me. ¡± ¡°Yes, sir,¡± Jim answered respectfully and immediately set off once Zachary hung up the phone. Fortunately, Zachary chose to stay at Brynfield, which was not far from the hotel and the office. The round trip took half an hour, and Jim knocked on Zachary¡®s door bringing with him the three breakfasts he had packed. LT While knocking, he suddenly had a thought. ¡®What if the person who came to open the door is Missus? How am I supposed to exin myself then? ¡®In her eyes, I¡®m just a professional chauffeur. I can¡®t say that I¡®m also a part¨Ctime deliveryman now, can I?¡® The door opened. Jim sighed in relief when he saw Zachary. There was no need for him to work part-time as a deliveryman now. He handed the breakfasts to Zachary. ¡°Don¡®t park the car downstairs anymore,¡± Zachary reminded him in a low voice. Jim was stunned and asked, ¡°Does Missus suspect something?¡± Zachary nced at him, and he zipped it. He would do whatever Zachary told him to do with no questions asked. Chapter 489 Chapter 489 Chapter 489 Zachary took the breakfast that Jim packed and ced them on the dining table. He had second thoughts and entered the kitchen again. He was brewing hot cocoa for Serenity. ¡°I thought you made the breakfast yourself, but it turned out to be takeouts. ¡± A teasing voice came through and Zachary did not even need to look back to know that it was his nana, neither did he say anything. ¡°What are you making? It smells sweet and choctey. ¡± Grandma May walked into the kitchen, uncovered the saucepan, and took a look. ¡°I thought there was some progress. ¡± The old woman muttered and nced at her grandson in disdain before turning to leave. Zachary¡®s handsome face tensed. He could not help but defend himself, ¡°I tried very hard. ¡± There was originally a chancest night, but God yed a trick on him. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°The heart. You have to go after the heart first. Didn¡®t you see that all of Serenity¡®s ten fingers are still empty?¡± Zachary was speechless. He tried very hard to go after her heart. He bought two wedding bands long ago, and he even wore his ring several times. However, it was just to make Elisa give up on him. Serenity¡®s ring was still with him since he had not given it to her. ¡°I have a pair of diamond rings that your grandfather bought when he was alive. We were supposed to wear it as a couple, but your grandfather bought too many diamond rings. I can¡®t wear all of them, so I left some of them in the jewelry vault. ¡°They¡®ll just take up space if I leave them there, so I¡®ll give them to you. Do as you please with thern. ¡± Grandma May¡®s jewelry vault was full of treasures. The diamond ring that she always wore was her wedding ring. Although her husband gave her many more diamond rings, she still liked to wear the one she had when she got married. ¡°Thanks, Nana. ¡± Zachary was well aware that the jewelry in his grandmother¡®s vault were better than those in the jewelry stores, with many being antique treasures. Every husband and wife from his parents¡¯ generation would receive a pair of diamond rings from Nana. Now, it was the grandchildren¡¯s turn. He was the first to receive a diamond ring from his grandmother He hoped that he could use the diamond ring presented to him by his grandmother to ensnare Serenity for the rest of her life. ¡°Learn how to say sweet words. Everyone likes hearing nice words. Don¡¯t keep wearing that tense face. It¡®ll make Serenity think that she owes you a fortune. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°I¡®m already old, but I still have to worry about your marriage. You¡®ll be letting me down if you don¡®t make me a great¨Cgrandmother by next year. ¡°Even your grandfather had a headache when it came to your marriage when he was still alive. ¡± Zachary was exasperated and thought, ¡®Am I that bad?¡® ¡°It¡®s quite cold today. ¡± Grandma May walked to the balcony and shivered from the cold wind. She hurriedly retreated inside. ¡°It finally feels like winter in Wiltspoon. ¡± Zachary did not speak. When the hot cocoa was ready, he came out of the kitchen and went into his room. Serenity had just woken up, but she was still lying in bed with a nk expression. Arge and slightly cold hand felt her face, pinching it softly, and in his low voice, Zachary said, ¡°Why are you spacing out?¡± Serenity grabbed his hand and pinched the back of it harshly. ¡°Serenity!¡± He let out a low shout. She pinched him with all her might. ¡°Does it hurt?¡± ¡°Do you think I¡¯m an iron wall who can¡¯t feel pain?¡± ¡°No, I thought I was dreaming, so I pinched you. Now I believe that this is reality after hearing your cry of pain. I slept in your bed against night. ¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡®If she suspected that she was dreaming, why didn¡®t she pinch herself instead? She¡®ll only know she¡¯s not dreaming if she herself feels the pain. Why did she pinch me then, and so hard at that? Chapter 490 Chapter 490 Chapter 490 The eldest son of the York family had never suffered from such a painful pinch in his life. It hurt! ¡°Is Nana up?¡± Serenity asked as she turned over to get out of bed. She wanted to slip back into her room before Grandma May woke up. ¡°She¡®s up. ¡± ¡°So early?¡± Serenity, who was ready to run, stopped in her tracks. ¡°Nana will see me if I go out like this. ¡± ¡°We¡®re husband and wife. ¡± Zachary did not like her sneaking around. Serenity grinned. ¡°You¡®re right, we¡®re husband and wife. There¡®s nothing to hide. Nana will only be happy if she sees us like this. She knows that we¡®ve been sleeping in separate rooms since we got married and has always urged me to do all sorts of things to you. ¡± Zachary looked at her without a word. He was also feeling utterly helpless with his nana. Of course, he was mostly grateful now. If not for her nagging, he would not have married Serenity. ¡°I¡®m going back to my room to change. What do you want to eat today? I¡®ll cook for you. ¡± ¡°I went and got takeout for breakfast, so there¡¯s no need to cook. ¡± Serenity took a double take at him and left the room. Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. What did those nces mean? Was it strange that he got takeouts for her? Would this make the sun rise from the west? ¡°Morning, Nana. ¡± Serenity went out and greeted the olddy as if nothing had happened. ¡°Morning, Serenity. ¡± Grandma May looked at her lovingly. ¡°You must be hungry. Zack got up early and braved the cold wind and rain to Wiltspoon Hotel and packed breakfast home. He said that you like the food there. ¡± Serenity¡¯s heart warmed as she listened. She felt like she was being cherished. I¡¯m not picky. He could¡¯ve just packed any breakfast from a nearby restaurant. ¡± Grandma Mayughed. ¡°You¡®ll get tired of eating those every day. It¡®s good to try something different asionally. It¡®s cold today, so go change your clothes and put on a jacket. ¡± Serenity hummed and pretended to be calm as she went back to her room. Once the door was closed, she could not help butugh. Ring ring ring¡­ The phone rang Serenity took out her phone, thinking it was her sister calling, but it turned out to be her best friend, Jasmine. ¡°Jasmine, I¡®ll be there soon. ¡± Serenity thought Jasmine was urging her to go help out in the store because it was too busy. ¡°Seren, I haven¡®t gone to the store today. I have a cold. I was dizzy when I woke up in the morning, so I took my temperature and found out that I¡®m running a high fever. I¡®ll have to go to the hospitalter. I¡®m just giving you a heads¨Cup that you¡®ll have to watch the store today. ¡± ¡°How did you catch a cold? Did you dress for fashion instead of warmth? It¡®s raining today and it feels like winter. Wear a few moreyers. The store belongs to us, so it¡®s only natural for me to watch it. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Please don¡®t stand on ceremony with me. ¡°Quickly get yourself to the hospital. Don¡®t drive and ask your brother to send you there. ¡± Jasmine hummed in response. ¡°My mom will take me to the hospital, so I won¡®t bother my brother. I¡®ll go see the doctor first. ¡± ¡°Okay, take care. ¡± ¡°You too. Wear moreyers. ¡± After exhorting each other, Jasmine hung up first. She could not go to the store today, so Serenity could not dally as usual. She changed her clothes as fast as she could and washed up. Then, she took the purse she always carried and went out. ¡°Nana and Zachary, I¡®ll go to the store first. I¡®ll bring breakfast there to eat. ¡± In one swift series of motions, she walked to the table, picked up her portion of breakfast, stuffed it into her bag, and left. ¡°Wait, Serenity. ¡± Zachary called out to her. Chapter 491 Chapter 491 Chapter 491 ¡°I made you hot cocoa. I¡®ll put it in the instion cup for you since you don¡¯t have time to enjoy it now. Take it with you to your shop. ¡± Serenity looked at Zachary in surprise. To think Zachary would make her hot cocoa. Zachary cleaned the instion cup before pouring the hot cocoa into it. He then put the lid on and packed the instion cup in a bag before handing it to Serenity. ¡°Don¡®t forget to drink it. ¡± Serenity took the bag and looked deeply into his eyes. She said, ¡°See you. ¡± She then took off. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Standing there, Zachary watched her head out the door. Grandma May told him off, ¡°Can¡®t you walk with her?¡± ¡°She knows where the exit is. ¡± Grandma May was speechless. She was about to prais his progress when reality gave her another p in the face. This punk ¡­ left her with no words. ¡°Nana, by the way Serenity was looking at me just now, I think she would¡®ve kissed me if you weren¡®t around. ¡± She was stumped for words. With Zachary regrettably returning to his seat next to Nana, the pair of grandmother and grandson quietly had their breakfast. ¡°I think Seren didn¡®t have her thick coat on,¡± the olddy noted. Zachary faintly replied, ¡°I¡®ll deliver it to her. ¡± . Grandma May was pleased with him getting the drift. LLL Despite leaving home in a hurry, Serenity did not forget to call Liberty to ask about Sonny. Since her sister had taken the day off work, Serenity drove straight to the shop without stopping by at her sister¡®s. Having missed the morning rush hour, Serenity set up the store and immediately tidied up the ce. Since it was raining, the shop appeared crammed with the stuff that should have been on disy outside Armed with a duster, Serenity dusted the shelves. The students would be having their term break in a few days. She could basically close the shop until after New Year¡®s. ¡°Serenity. ¡± A familiar voice came from behind her. Turning around, Serenity first saw the bouquet of vivid¨Ccolored roses beforeying eyes on the bouquet holder¨CShawn. She had not seen him for a while. Shawn appeared rather haggard and unkempt with his five o¡®clock shadow. The usually cheerful boy was nowhere to be found. Showing not much of a reaction, Serenity looked away from him and back to her cleaning. ¡°Jas is sick at the hospital. You should visit her there. ¡± She was giving Shawn an out. ¡°Seren, I¡®m here for you. ¡± Shawn presented Serenity with the bouquet. Serenity brushed the bouquet aside with the duster. Shawn stared at her in dismay without hiding the hurt in his eyes. ¡°Seren. ¡± ¡°Shawn, what¡®s the meaning of this?¡± Brewing inside, Serenity red at him. ¡°Have I not made myself clear? I¡®m married!¡± Chapter 492 Chapter 492 Chapter 492 Shawn uttered in agony. ¡°Seren, I know you¡®re married, but it¡®s just a marriage of convenience. You¡®ll divorce. I like you, Serenity, and I¡®ve fallen for you a long time ago. ¡°I know you can¡®t ept me now. I tried to keep my distance from you, but I couldn¡®t do it. All I can think about is you the first chance I get. Serenity, I want you to know that I love you. ¡± Presenting Serenity with the bouquet once more, he looked her straight in the eye. ¡°Serenity, would you give me a chance to go after you?¡± Jasmine had a talk with him and warned him against it. However, Shawn could not simply drop his feelings and give up. He really loved Serenity. Shawn regretted not confessing his feelings to Serenity the moment he fell in love with her. Serenity might wait until he was older rather than marry a stranger if he hade clean about his feelings. Serenity reached out and snatched the flowers before walking past Shawn to throw the bouquet into the bin at the door. Turning her body around, she said to Shawn, ¡°Shawn, are you going to leave, or do I need to chase you out with a broomstick?¡± ¡°Serenity!¡± Shawn cried in pain, ¡°Can you not be so cold to me? You weren¡®t like this before. You used to be so good to me. Your cold¨Cheartedness now is like a knife cutting through me again and again. ¡°How am I not better than the husband you married with no prior meeting? We¡®ve known each other for more than a decade and shared everything together. Why didn¡®t you pick me?¡± Jasmine broke it down to him why Serenity did not pick him. It was because Serenity had always seen him as a younger brother. Yet, Shawn would not listen. He did not want to be Serenity¡®s younger brother. He wanted to be her husband and man. ¡°I was only good to you because you were a younger brother to me. I would rather die than be nice had I known it would give you the wrong idea. ¡± After a decade of friendship, she could say that she had been there when Shawn grew up. It was also tough on Serenity to be indifferent to Shawn now, but she had to! Serenity was no longer alone with Zachary having her back now. Serenity could not do as she pleased or be nice to just about anybody like before as she was now Zachary¡¯s wife. She had to take Zachary¡¯s feelings into consideration. Besides, she did not like Shawn romantically. She saw Shawn as her younger brother. How would there be romance between siblings? She had to be distant so that Shawn could get over his feelings. Discoloration washed over Shawn¡¯s face. ¡°Serenity¡­ H¨C How am I lesser than your husband? You don¡®t know each other, but you could get married without feelings involved. Why can¡®t you give me a chance when we¡¯ve known each other for more than a decade? All I want is a chance to wait for you. ¡± Looking at him dead in the eye, Serenity ruthlessly uttered, ¡°Shawn, since I rather marry a stranger than choose you, it proves I have no romantic feelings for you. What we have is a sibling rtionship. ¡°I wouldn¡®t ept your feelings even if I was single, much less now that I¡®m married. I don¡®t want to date my family. Besides, how could I possibly fall for you when you¡®re a brother to me? Shawn yelled, ¡°We¡®re not siblings! We¡®re not rted by blood!¡± He went up and locked his bloodshot eyes with Serenity. ¡°Please, Serenity. Please give me a chance. ¡± He extended his arm to grab Serenity¡®s hand, but Serenity pped his hand away with the duster. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°Don¡®t touch me, Shawn, or I won¡®t hold back on you. You know I do kickboxing. ¡± Serenity did not want to get physical with Shawn, but she would show no mercy if he refused to open his eyes andy a finger on her instead! ¡°You haven¡®t got a chance! Not in this lifetime, Shawn! You should leave before we be enemies. Don¡¯t evere back here. ¡± Pale in the face, Shawn could not stop his lips from shaking. ¡°Enemies¡­ Serenity, are you going to take me for an enemy?¡± He was in love with her, but she saw him as the enemy. These words were heart-wrenching and eating him up inside. Chapter 493 Chapter 493 Chapter 493 ¡°Shawn, I¡¯m someone else¡¯s wife now. My husband and I have gotten a marriage license. Although we married right away, we¡¯re developing feelings for each other. I won¡¯t betray my husband. ¡°If you¡®re hell¨Cbent on getting in between my husband and I, starting troubles and rumors, you¡®re depleting what¡®s left of our rtionship. I¡®ll be forced to hate you and see you as an enemy. ¡± With paleness overtaking Shawn¡®splexion, Serenity sighed, wondering when she ever sent out the wrong message. As she would put it, she would rather die than be nice to Shawn had she known it would give Shawn the wrong idea. Serenity was long¨Ctime friends with Jasmine, so she knew Shawn through Jasmine. As she was older than Shawn, Serenity had always yed the part of an older sister to him. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. It never crossed her mind that¡­ ¡°Shawn. ¡± Rxing her tensed facial muscles, Serenity said, ¡°You¡®re a nice and cheerful boy, Shawn, but you and I don¡®t go together. Stay away from me. I can promise to keep my distance from you too. Let time and distance help you to move on. You¡®ll soon realize that it doesn¡®t have to be me. ¡°Letting go is not losing the person. You¡®ll be gaining a new life to find the love that¡®s yours to keep. Shawn, thank you for liking me. Please forgive me that I can¡®t give you any chance because I¡®ve fallen in love with my husband. ¡°I won¡®t leave him unless he gives up on our marriage. My heart can¡®t ept another now that he lives in it. ¡°Please don¡®t do this again. Next time, I¡®ll chase you out with a broom and cut ties with you. That would be it for our friendship. ¡± Shawn shook. He could not believe Serenity could be so cruel. Her words were more than hurtful. ¡°Serenity¡­¡± Serenity extended her hand out, gesturing for Shawn to leave. While doing that, she caught a glimpse of a familiar figure standing not too far away. With Serenity looking over, Zachary threw the coat and umbre in his hand over the front hood of her car. The umbre happened to shield the coat from the rain. As she watched in dismay, Zachary turned around and took strides back to his car. He opened the door, got into the car, started the engine, and turned around to drive away. It was all done without pause. He was already far by the time Serenity snapped out of the trance. All Serenity could think about was ¡®Oh, sh*t!¡®. She was caught by Zachary yet again. Was he getting the wrong idea about her again? o note home, start another silent treatment, and delete her number once Wash more? Shawn¡®s full attention was on Serenity, so he did not notice Zachary¡®s arrival and departure. Seeing Serenity stunned there, he sensed something amiss and concernedly cried, ¡°What¡®s the matter, Serenity?¡± Serenity pushed him away and ran into the shop to grab the car keys from the cash register. She then made her way out and unlocked the car without an umbre. Serenity grabbed the coat and umbre on the hood along the way. She stuffed the coat and umbre into the car before getting in herself. ¡°Serenity! Serenity!¡± Shawn came after her, pping on her car window and asking anxiously, ¡°What happened, Serenity?¡± All Serenity could think about was catching up to Zachary and exining to him before he got the wrong impression again. Thest time, Zachary saw her serving Shawn some food. She had no idea Shawn had a crush on her at the time and was merely thanking him for his help. Shawn was a younger brother to her anyway. Zachary did not lose his temper at the time or even let her know that he saw her. He had an argument with her while he was drunk and started to stay out from the next day onward. Zachary gave her the cold shoulder for days and also deleted her number. Since the incident, Serenity knew she must do something the moment a misunderstanding arose. She must rity to him at the earliest before things go from bad to worse. They were different from other couples. Chapter 494 Chapter 494 Chapter 494 It was because Serenity and Zachary got into the marriage without any feelings for each other in the beginning. It took a lot of care for them toe this far. Serenity drove away. Shawn wanted to take his car and gain up on her, but seeing that no one was watching Serenity¡®s shop, he gave up the chase and stayed to watch over the shop. Serenity ran into Elisa at the corner turning into the school. Their cars nearly collided right before both parties jammed on the brakes. Elisa rolled down her window to give the other party a piece of her mind when she realized that it was Serenity¡®s car. She shouted, ¡°Where are you going, Serenity?¡± Serenity was surprised to see that it was Elisa. Noticing the beautiful middle¨Caged woman sitting on the passenger¡®s seat next to Elisa, Serenity guessed it must be Mrs. Stone. She nodded at the mother and daughter and said, ¡°I have an urgent matter to attend to, Elisa. ¡°Jas is in the hospital for a cold and fever. No one¡¯s looking after the shop. Can I trouble you to watch the ce for me?¡± ¡°Serenity, I¡­ Sure, I¡¯ll leave you to deal with your stuff. ¡± Elisa wanted to say that she came here with her mother to bring Serenity and her mother for a DNA test. However, Serenity must have had an emergency since she appeared rather anxious, so Elisa ended up agreeing to watch the shop. Serenity restarted the engine and disappeared into traffic. Traffic was bad as it was the morning rush hour. Cars were jammed up on many roads. Serenity was desperate. She wished she had wings to fly all the way to York Corporation. Had she known, she would have taken the e-bike to work The four-wheeled ride protected her from the external elements, but it was useless in the heavy traffic. Serenity kept phoning Zachary while on the unmoving road, but he refused to pick up. He would not even return her text messages. Now, this was all too familiar That was how he acted when he was angry and took things the wrong way. He refused to receive calls or reply to messages. Zachary was jealous. Before he could get out of the car upon his arrival at the shop, Zachary witnessed Serenity bringing the roses out of the shop and dumping them in a bin. Serenity said something to Shawn, and Shawn tried to reach out and grab her, but she pped his hand away with a duster. Serenity did not do him any wrong. Yet, Zachary could not stop himself from getting angry. Hence why he turned on his heel and left when she saw him. Zachary was acting on his instincts. At present, he was on his way back to the office. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Serenity¡®s call came in when he was driving. Zachary was not in the mood to ept the call. He did not bother to read the text messages she sent either. Zachary simply drove on, going past his office building without stopping. It was not until he was miles away that it hit him. He made a U¨Cturn at the intersection ahead and went back to where he came from. Several minutester, Zachary stepped into the office building with a face longer than a horse. Josh must be looking for Zachary as he was hanging around Mr. Chaplin¡®s desk, chatting away. Seeing that Zachary was here, Josh ditched Mr. Chaplin and went up to Zachary. Chapter 495 Chapter 495 Chapter 495 To everybody¡¯s surprise, Zachary grimacingly ignored Josh and stormed past him. The only thing Josh heard was Zachary callously telling Mr. Chaplin, ¡°Notify all senior-level executives for a meeting now. ¡± Josh wondered if the earth was about to shake. ¡°Duly noted. ¡± Mr. Chaplin was ahead of Josh in responding as Josh was taken aback by his best friend¡®s sour face. Zachary made a beeline to his office, only to stomp back out in less than two minutes to head to the meeting room. Josh went with him this time. There was no one in the meeting room. No meeting was scheduled today, to begin with. Yet, Zachary told Mr. Chaplin to notify higher management to attend ast¨Cminute meeting The man was on a warpath! Zachary entered the meeting room and took a seat at his ce while waiting for the arrival of his executives with a stoic face. Josh paused before making his way to Zachary. He pulled a chair out and sat next to Zachary. ¡°What¡®s going on with you, Zachary? Who got on your nerves first thing in the morning?¡± Josh drew close and probingly asked, ¡°Did you have a fight with the missus?¡± Zachary carried the same expression when the former butted heads with Serenity.N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. He raised hell at the workce for a few days until Grandma May had to jump in to mediate the couple¡®s fight. Only then, the dark cloud over thepany finally let through a shimmer of light. Without a word, Zachary pulled out his phone and tapped on his messages to read Serenity¡¯s texts. She exined to him that there was nothing going on between her and Shawn. Serenity also told Zachary that Shawn had confessed his feelings to her, but she turned him down and talked him into moving on. Hence why the conversation went on for quite a while. She did nothing to hurt him. Serenity was not going for the next guy toe into her life, nor was she going to have another man. She only wanted him! Shawn confessed his feelings to her! For the brat who had not weaned off his mother¡®s milk to profess his love to Serenity while being fully aware that she was married was throwing down a gauntlet at Zachary! ¡°Josh, do we have any business dealings with the Lowes?¡± ¡°None with the headquarters, but they have an ongoing partnership with our subsidiaries. ¡± ¡°Whichever subsidiarypany that is, end the partnership. ¡± ¡°Huh?¡± Tilting his head, Zachary red at Josh. ¡°Is there a problem?¡± Josh immediately replied, ¡°No, no problem at all. Okay. We¡®ll end all partnerships with the Lowes. ¡± So, it appeared Shawn had angered the tiger. Shawn was a fool who rushed in where angels feared to tread. The boy had iting by stepping on Zachary¡®s toes. ¡°Lowe Enterprise has a project that¡®s up our alley. Take it from them. ¡± Josh bobbed his head. ¡°Sure, of course. We¡¯ll steal the project out of their hands. ¡± Still, Josh had to point something out. ¡°We¡®ll be dering war against Lowe Enterprise by doing so. ¡± It would be going against the Lowes for stealing their project. ¡°Yes, I¡®m dering war on them!¡± Shawn should have thought twice before eyeballing his wife. For the boy to attempt stealing his woman, Zachary had to do something before Shawn believed he was no threat. ¡°Alright, York Corporation fears no one. You¡®re free to challenge anyone you want, and you have my full support. But, Zachary, can you tell me what happened that made you go after Lowe Enterprise?¡± Chapter 496 Chapter 496 Chapter 496 Zachary fell silent. ¡°You should let it all out to me before the others arrive. Don¡¯t bottle everything up inside. You¡®re not just harming yourself by doing that but everybody in thepany too. ¡± Zachary¡¯s rage brought forth hellfire! Josh was trying his best to keep the better days alive in the entire office building. ¡°I saw Serenity with Shawn when I was delivering her a coat. ¡± Josh was rendered speechless. with his jaw wide open, Josh had a hard time finding the words before finally saying, ¡°It¡®s a misunderstanding. I¡®m sure it¡®s a misunderstanding. Sometimes, what you see isn¡®t the whole truth, Zachary. Don¡®t sulk as you did before. You have to give the missus a chance to exin. ¡± ¡°Shawn confessed his feelings to her. ¡± Josh paused and replied, ¡°Shawn is my idol. He¡®s bold and courageous. Mr. Lowe taught him well to be his sessor. ¡± Zachary gave Josh the stank eye. Josh rubbed his nose and said with a smile, ¡°Zachary, maybe I should get Mr. Chaplin to buy you bucket loads of green paint. ¡± Zachary scowled. ¡°Here¡®s a question for you. Did you see Serenity epting Shawn¡®s feelings? What did they talk about?¡± After a brief silence, Zachary responded, ¡°I saw Serenity holding a duster with one hand and a bouquet with another as she came out of the shop to dump the roses in the trash can. She then had a long talk with Shawn, but I couldn¡®t hear what they were saying. ¡°I also saw Shawn trying to grab her hand¡­¡± With his eyes sparkling for gossip, Josh eagerly asked, ¡°Did he manage to grab her hand?¡± ¡°No. Serenity pped his hand away with the duster. ¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Josh remarked, ¡°So he didn¡®t hold her hand. What are you jealous about then? It seems Serenity has rejected Shawn. ¡± Tension ran along his facial lines as Zachary remained without a word. He knew that Serenity did not ept Shawn¡¯s feelings. Serenity had also sent him a lot of text messages to give full details. Still, Zachary was disgruntled and eating his heart out. ¡°Zachary, you fell in love with Serenity because of her charms. Just because you like her, you can¡¯t stop anyone else from liking her too. It¡®s the same thing as Elisa having feelings for you. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Was Serenity jealous when she found out that Elisa likes you?¡± Josh turned into a love guru in an attempt to enlighten his best friend and boss. The wholepany should thank Josh as their lives would be a living hell once more if it were not for him by Zachary¡®s side. Zachary sulkily answered. ¡°She knows Elisa likes me. She even gave Elisa ideas to pursue me. ¡± Josh was lost for words. ¡°Serenity doesn¡®t even know that you¡®re the great Mr. Zachary York, alright!¡± Josh stood up for Serenity. ¡°Shawn has known her for over a decade. They¡®re childhood friends¡­ Fine, fine. They¡®re not childhood friends, alright? Stop ring at me. Your looks could kill. ¡± Josh added amusedly, ¡°If Shawn likes Serenity, that¡®s his business. She can¡®t control him or stop him from liking her, okay? All is good so long as she doesn¡®t ept Shawn¡®s feelings nor has a rtionship with Shawn behind your back. ¡°The number of men having the hots for your wife proves you have a good eye for Mrs. Right. You don¡®t need to be jealous or envious because that¡®s what other men should be feeling You¡®re the one who gets to go home to her. ¡± Before falling in love, Josh could not understand Zachary¡®s pettiness and jealousy. Zachary would turn into a green¨Ceyed monster every time he was jealous. Josh felt sympathetic toward Serenity as she was stuck with a petty man like Zachary. Zachary uttered aloofly, ¡°I can¡®t even stand Shawn, let alone other men. ¡± Jealousy would bury him alive. Josh replied with a smile, ¡°I was only speaking metaphorically. I didn¡®t mean anything by it. ¡± Zachary scoffed without putting forth ament. Chapter 497 Chapter 497 Chapter 497 The senior executives entered the meeting room in droves by then. Seeing the two biggest bosses waiting in the room, the senior executives were startled and got a bad feeling about the meeting being called at thest minute. Zachary still had his poker face on. Some looked at Callum, hoping to seekfort from him. The least he could do was tell them what the sudden meeting was about. Although Callum appeared calm, he was looking at Josh. Sure, Callum was from the same family as Zack, but Josh was closest to Zack. Josh got up. ¡°I¡®m going to the men¡®s,¡± he said while tipping Callum the wink. Getting the hint, Callum got to his feet and followed behind Josh before all attendance was ounted for Despite knowing what was going on, Zachary did not stop them. Zachary stared at the senior executives who were in the meeting room. Josh mentioned that he would drive his employees up the wall when he went mad. Zachary was interested to see how so. Everybody was at a loss for words. ¡®Why are you looking at us like that, Sir?¡® ¡®What did we do wrong? Please give us a quick and painless death. At least, tell us what we did. ¡¯ Callum followed Josh out and caught up to him to ask, ¡°What¡®s up with Zack, Josh?¡± Josh stopped in his tracks and turned around before whispering a question, ¡°Do you have Serenity¡®s mobile number?¡± ¡°Yes, I do. ¡± ¡°Hurry up and call her. Tell her toe here no matter what. Zachary¡¯s crazy jealous right now. This meeting is called at thest minute. Your cousin is going to bite people¡¯s heads off for any upleted projects. He¡¯s in a foul mood and taking it out on us. ¡°The only one who can save us is your cousin¡¯s wife. I believe you won¡¯t want to relive those hellish days again. You¡¯re Mr. York¡¯s cousin. You can¡¯t refute him if he gets on your back, and you still have to face him at home. ¡± Callum replied hesitantly, ¡°Zachary and his wife were fine during the weekend though. They were all lovey-doveyst night too. What changed overnight?¡± ¡°Zachary¡®s love rival confessed his feelings to his wife. Of all people, your cousin saw the whole thing, and now he¡®s jealous. You might as well get him cans of green paint. ¡± Callum whipped out his phone. ¡°T¡®ll call Serenity now. ¡± For professional and personal reasons, Callum hoped there was no conflict between Zachary and Serenity. ¡°I can¡®t believe Zachary had his routine disrupted because of Serenity. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Having found Serenity¡®s number, Callum immediately reached her but got the automated response that she was on call. He helplessly hung up and told Josh, ¡°Serenity¡®s line is busy. ¡± Josh¡®s eyes lit up. ¡°Never mind then. Let¡®s get back to the meeting room. The meeting should adjourn in less than five minutes. He bet Serenity was on the line with Zachary. Thest¨Cminute meeting should be over once Serenity soothed Zachary. Even if the meeting would go on, Josh or Callum would be left to preside over it. Whichever the case, they would be spared a telling¨Coff from Zachary. LI ¡°My hats off to the missus. ¡± Zachary was a rather disciplined man. Yet, he threw his routine out the window because of Serenity. It was a good thing the senior executives were in the dark about the truth. Otherwise, they would be rendered speechless. Callum shared the same sentiment. ¡°I¡®m going to learn from Rowan and cling onto Serenity. ¡± ¡°I want to hold onto her tightly and don¡®t let go too. ¡± Serenity had no idea there were people wanting totch onto her. She was stuck in traffic for a while before escaping the road congestion. It took her another ten minutes to get to York Corporation. Rain was pouring at this point. The temperature dropped even lower. Chapter 498 Chapter 498 Chapter 498 Serenity stopped the car in front of York Corporation¡®s building before giving Zachary another call. While on the road, she had called Zachary no fewer than twenty times. The jealousy¨Cridden sourpuss refused to take her calls. It made her worried sick! Fortunately, Zachary finally epted her call. ¡°I¡®m at the entrance of your office building, Zachary. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Can you take thirty minutes off work? Come out. I need to talk to you. ¡± Jumping to his feet, Zachary approached the window in the meeting room and pulled open the curtains to look down. Since he was on a high floor and far away from the ground, Zachary could not tell if the car at the entrance belonged to Serenity. ¡°Are you listening, Zachary? Say something. ¡± Serenity uttered anxiously, ¡°Come out. I¡®ll wait for you at the entrance until you¡®re off work if you don¡®te out. ¡± Zachary¡®s husky voice came through. ¡°Hang on. I¡®ll be right out. ¡± Closing the curtains, he turned on his heel to walk out of the meeting room. After hanging up on the call, he solemnly instructed, ¡°Josh, take over the meeting. ¡± Josh nearly burst intoughter. He was right on the money. Still, Josh did not show it on his face when he answered, ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary ditched his senior executives and dashed out of the meeting room. He took the lift to the first floor and caught sight of Serenity when he walked to the entrance of the office building. Serenity was out of the car, holding the umbre he threw onto her car hood. Zachary did not have an umbre. Just as Zachary was about to run in the rain, a receptionist perceptively grabbed an umbre and gave it to him, ¡°It¡®s pouring down heavy, Sir. Take this. ¡± ¡°Thank you. ¡± Taking the umbre from the receptionist, Zachary took steady strides out with the umbre. All the jealousy disappeared the moment he saw Serenity standing at the entrance. It never crossed Zachary¡®s mind that Serenity woulde all this way. It turned his frown upside down for sure. She cared about him. Shawn could shove it even though the boy knew Serenity for more than a decade. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Serenity felt like crying when the man finally made an appearance. He denied her the chance to exin, and he did so every single time. Zachary would take off without a word when he saw her with another man. It was not like she did him dirty. All Serenity did was turn Shawn down and talk him into moving on. ¡°Why didn¡®t you wear the coat? Didn¡®t I leave you one?¡± Zachary felt bad to see her without the coat he delivered, so he took off his jacket and draped it over her shoulders. ¡°The coat is in the car. Don¡®t take yours off. You only have a shirt underneath. It¡®s getting colder because of the long downpour. ¡± Serenity handed the jacket back to him. Zachary then went to her car to grab the coat. It was a little wet because the persistent rain drenched the car hood. Even though he put an umbre over the coat, the wet hood dampened the coat. mping the umbre between his neck and shoulder, Zachary checked the insides of the coat with his free hand. He only draped the coat over Serenity¡®s shoulders after confirming the insides were dry. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Serenity looked at him as he held onto the umbre. Tossing her umbre aside, she ran over and jumped into his embrace to hold him tightly. Acting on reflexes, Zachary put his arm around her waist. Chapter 499 Chapter 499 Chapter 499 ¡°You¡®re a b*stard! You won¡®t even give me a chance to exin. What you see isn¡¯t always the truth. ¡± Serenity let go of Zachary and angrily pinched him on the arm. He scared her. She thought they were entering another phase of silent treatment. Zachary quietly took her pinching. It hurt like hell, but he did not care. All was good knowing that she cared about him. ¡°Shawn confessed his feelings to me, but I rejected him. I¡®m your wife. I won¡®t leave you unless you decide you don¡®t want me anymore. ¡± ¡°Really?¡± The concealment of his identity came to mind. Would she stay by his side when she was to find out that he had been lying to her for so long? ¡°Don¡®t you believe me?¡± Letting out a sigh, Zachary pulled her into his arms. ¡°Serenity, I was really angry when I saw you with Shawn. My instinct told me to leave. I know that you were not to me. Shawn was all over you. ¡°The truth is¡­ I¡®m jealous. ¡°I¡®m green with envy. I¡®m jealous at the thought Shawn loves you and that he has had the pleasure of knowing you for more than a decade. ¡± Zachary had not known Serenity for long. His rtionship with her could not beat her decade¨Clong rtionship with Shawn. Shawn got to know her and fell in love with her sooner than Zachary could. Zachary fell far behind Shawn in every single way. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°Shawn and L. I told you before that he¡®s a younger brother to me. I don¡®t like him that way. We wouldn¡®t have gotten married if I had romantic feelings for him. I would¡®ve gone for Shawn to give my sister peace of mind. ¡± Despite knowing that Serenity was telling the truth, Zachary could not get over his bitterness. Basically, Serenity was saying that Zachary stood no chance if she was into Shawn. Zachary could buzz off to wherever he came from. ¡°Are you still jealous?¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity stared at his grimacing face. Amused, she pinched his face. ¡°Has any talent scout cast you to be an actor? You make the perfect grinch without makeup. ¡± Zachary took her by the hand and replied gruffly, ¡°I am. ¡± ¡°Didn¡®t you say you don¡®t know what jealousy was? I had to give you a dictionary for that. ¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. Since he had nothing, he might as well lower his head and seal those luscious lips. It did not slip Serenity¡®s mind that they were in front of his office building. Although it was working hours, there were still peopleing in and out of the ce. She let him give her a quick peck before pushing him away. Serenity uttered softly, ¡°Trust me, Zachary. I won¡®t do anything to betray you while we¡®re stillwfully married. ¡± ¡°I trust you. ¡± Zachary did not take his hands away from her as they walked to her car. He pulled open the door. ¡°Get inside. It¡®s chilly outside. ¡± It was snowy in Meadspring while the temperature had only begun to drop in Wiltspoon. After Serenity was stuffed into the backseat, Zachary followed suit. With the door closed, Zachary pinned her down to the seat and towered over her to lock tongues. It took several kisses to diminish most of Zachary¡®s jealousy. ¡°Don¡®t meet with Shawn ever again,¡± Zachary demanded. ¡°I know you don¡®t love him, but it doesn¡®t change the fact that he¡®s in love with you. God knows what he¡®ll do to you since he can¡®t have you. ¡± ¡°I¡®ll beat him up if he gets handsy. ¡± Chapter 500 Chapter 500 Chapter 500 ¡°Although you can kickbox, you should stay away from him. Your husband is petty¨Cminded and can¡¯t stand to see you together with him. I¡®ll get jealous even though he¡®s the one all over you. ¡± Zachary was feeling jealous in the past but he never admitted to it back then. It would not matter to Zachary who Serenity was with if he did not care. Now that he had feelings for Serenity, Zachary lost his head and was out for blood. ¡°I¡®ll chase him away if hees along, but I can¡®t cut off his legs to stop him froming. ¡± Zachary put on a stern look and said, ¡°I¡®ll make sure he doesn¡®t show his face. ¡± ¡°What are you nning to do? Don¡®t do anything stupid. ¡± Zachary pinched her cheek. ¡°Don¡®t worry. I won¡®t do anything stupid now that I have you. ¡± He wanted to spend the rest of his days with her. Zachary had made ns to end partnerships with the Lowes and even steal from them some projects that were in talks. The Lowes would know the Yorks were putting the heat on them. Zachary would be waiting for Mr. Lowe toe and ask him the reason for doing so. Serenity could not stop Shawn, but who was to say his parents could not stop him? ¡°Don¡®t go too hard on him for Jasmine¡®s sake. ¡± With Jasmine¡®s nameing into the picture, Zachary subtly asked, ¡°Why didn¡®t Ms. Sox stop Shawn?¡± Was Jasmine on her cousin¡®s side regarding this? ¡°Jas has a fever. She¡®s at the hospital. She wasn¡®t at the shop. ¡± The realization then hit Serenity. She said amusedly, ¡°Don¡®t tell me you were suspecting Jas for helping Shawn to pester me? She¡®s not that type of a person. She hopes Shawn could move on more than anyone else. ¡± As her best friend, Jasmine had the best understanding of the person Serenity was. Jasmine knew that Serenity did not love Shawn romantically, and that would not change no matter what Shawn did. Shawn¡®s fixation on Serenity would only get him hurt. Jasmine was Shawn¡¯s cousin. Feeling sorry for her cousin, Jasmine could only persuade Shawn to get over his feelings. Shawn could only get his life back when he let go of his obsession with Serenity. That was why anyone but Jasmine would take Shawn¡¯s side. ¡°Uh¡­ I was wrong about Ms. Sox. ¡°So she¡®s not well. ¡± Zachary must inform Joshter so thetter could have an excuse to contact Jasmine. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°Yeah. She has a high fever. It could be the sudden change of weather. She picked fashion overfort and caught a cold in return. ¡± Serenity had always seen her best friend in a dress during winter. Although the dresses were made of warmer materials, Serenity believed winter clothes were more appropriate for the season. Serenity often teased her best friend for choosing style overfort. The girls had different preferences when it came to winter clothing. Serenity wished she could wear a duvet out when the weather was chilly. ¡°Give me your phone, Zachary. ¡± ¡°What¡®s the matter?¡± Serenity put her hand out, demanding his phone. ¡°I want to see if I¡®m still on your contact list. Did you delete my number? With that history of yours, I need to check your phone. You can forget re¨Cadding my number if you wipe out my contact again. ¡± She had a temper too. Zacharypliantly handed out his phone. He unlocked the phone and tapped on the message icon for her convenience to examine. ¡°It¡®s easy to delete a number but difficult to add it back. It was a hard lesson to learn. I won¡®t make the same mistake again. ¡± While adding back her number thest time, Serenity mentioned that they would be through if they deleted each other¡®s numbers again. With her number still on his contact list, Serenity¡®s mind was put at ease. Nevertheless, it upset her that he did not respond to a single message despite her blowing up his phone with multiple text messages. Shoving his phone back into his hand, she opened the door and uttered, ¡°Alright now. I¡®ve cleared the air, so get down. You should get back to work. I need to return to the shop. Elisa brought her mother there. I told her to watch the shop for me. ¡± Zachary stared at her and asked, ¡°Are you agry, Seren?¡± Chapter 501 Chapter 501 Chapter 501 ¡°I¡®m not petty like you. ¡± Zachary replied hesitantly, ¡°You¡®re mad. ¡± ¡°Yes, I¡®m mad. I sent you so many text messages, yet you¡¯re cruel enough not to reply to any one of them. ¡± While getting out of the car, Serenity pulled Zachary out together with her. She put the umbre into his hand and said, ¡°You should get back to work. I got to go. ¡± She was still hungry. Serenity did not have the chance to drink the hot cocoa he made for her this morning and now her stomach was aching. ¡°I¡®ll watch you leave from here. ¡± Since Elisa and her mother came looking for Serenity, they must be there to talk about Mrs. Stone¡®s sister. Zachary could not keep Serenity for long. Serenity sat behind the wheel and waved at Zachary, saying, ¡°Let me know beforehand if you¡¯re coming over for lunch. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Otherwise, you wouldn¡®t even have any leftovers. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary would not head to the shop if Mrs. Stone and her daughter were there. Serenity soon drove away. Standing there, Zachary watched her car go out of sight before turning on his heel to walk back Unbeknownst to him, Josh had been taking turns with Callum spying on the couple at the front of the office building with a pair of binocrs. As for the senior executives who were called to the meeting, Josh discussed a bit of work rted stuff and quickly adjourned the meeting. ¡°If only I had super hearing. ¡± Josh put down the binocrs. Since they could only see but not hear, they had no idea what the dummy said to his missus. The young couple must be doing something X-rated in the car. Who would have thought an uptight, no-nonsense man like Zachary was capable of such a thing? All hail the power of love. Hang on. It should be the power of jealousy. Zachary only became reckless because of jealousy. Callum said with a smile, ¡°Zack¡®sing back. I should go. Don¡®t forget to put the binocrs back into Zack¡®s drawer or bear the consequences should he find out. ¡± He made a quick escape. Josh immediately hurried out of the meeting room with the binocrs and stuffed them back into Zachary¡®s drawer before going back. He then walked out like nothing ever happened. Mr. Chaplin yed blind and saw nothing. Josh ran into Zachary at the lift. ¡°Is the meeting over?¡± Zachary asked in a good mood. ¡°It just ended. Why? Did you have anything to add?¡± ¡°No. ¡± Zachary brushed past Josh before stopping. He turned his head and told Josh, ¡°Ms. Sox has a high fever. She¡®s in the hospital. ¡± Josh asked calmly, ¡°Really?¡± Once Zachary was gone, Josh whipped out his phone and gave Jasmine a call. He asked about her, making sure she was okay on the phone. Having found out Jasmine was put on IV drips in the hospital, Josh said, ¡°I¡®ll head there right now to keep youpany, Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine, Mr. Bucham. My mom¡®s with me. ¡± ¡°I see. Do take care and stay hydrated. ¡± Chapter 502 Chapter 502 Chapter 502 For the sake of peace and quiet, Jasmine did not hesitate to lie on the floor at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday celebration. It meant that the pressure to get married was pretty bad for Jasmine. Josh would not be able to wiggle his way out of the situation if Mrs. Sox caught him visiting Jasmine. Although Jasmine was his type, nothing was carved in stone yet between them. They had not reached the stage of meeting the parents. Josh only let the head of the Bucham household know about it while keeping it from the others. He was afraid the seniors of his family would turn up in arge group at Jasmine¡¯s house and scare her off. Jasmine thanked Josh¡¯s show of concern. The pair did not chat for long and ended the phone conversation. Elisa and her mother waited at Serenity¡¯s shop for Serenity¡¯s return. Shawn left after Elisa and her mother came along. Shawn¡¯s mother warned him to keep a distance from Elisa. The Lowes did not want to cross the fiery princess of the Stones. Mrs. Stone had made up her mind that Serenity and Liberty were her nieces. She looked around every corner of Serenity¡¯s shop. She saw plenty of other items. Baffled, Mrs. Stoned asked her daughter, ¡°Why does Serenity have a lot of skincare and cosmetic products in her shop?¡± Mrs. Stone knew that Serenity also had an online business selling her own crafts. She had seen the maneki¨Cneko Elisa brought home. It was well made. Her daughter loved the maneki¨Cneko a lot. Elisa¡¯s face turned red. She replied awkwardly, ¡°I bought those stuff, Mom. I would turn to retail therapy whenever I feel down. It doesn¡¯t matter if the products have no use to me. I buy them all. ¡°It was only when I calmed down after the shopping that I realized you¡¯d tear into me for getting stuff I didn¡¯t need. So, I gave them all to Serenity. ¡± Mrs. Stone retorted, ¡°So you dumped your stuff on Serenity like she¡¯s a recycling center?¡± Elisa stuck out her tongue. She went up and held her mother¡®s arm while sweet ¨Ctalking. ¡°Now that I know Serenity might be my cousin, it¡®s only proper for me as the older cousin to give her gifts. I¡®m not dumping my stuff on her. ¡± ¡°Right. It¡®s all thanks to you that I might have possibly found your aunt. Only¡­¡± Mrs. Stone ended mid¨Csentence. She hoped and was also afraid the DNA test would show that she and Serenity were rted by blood. If they were rted, it meant that her sister was dead for fifteen years. Mrs. Stone would have to wait until her time on earth was over before reuniting with her sister once more in heaven. ¡°Mom. ¡± Elisa knew her mother was sad. Clinging onto her mother¡®s arm, Elisaforted her, ¡°Although my aunt might no longer be with us, she left behind two daughters. You have been searching for your sister for decades. It¡®s a blessing that you could find two nieces. ¡°Let¡®s not forget Sonny as well. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. He¡®s a cutie pie. I took an instant liking to him. I¡®m so envious Serenity has such a cute nephew. I can¡®t believe he might be my nephew too. Haha! I¡®m going to buy Sonny lots and lots of toys. ¡± Mrs. Stone¡®s heart could melt just thinking about the adorable kid. ¡°How is it going with Sonny? Did you ask Serenity? Tell Serenity to let us know if she needs our help. ¡°We¡®ll help her regardless of whether she¡®s my niece or not. ¡± No matter what, Serenity was one of her darling daughter¡®s handful of best friends. Mrs. Stone¡®s love for her daughter was extended to her friends too. She had a good opinion of Serenity, to begin with. ¡°I haven¡®t asked Serenity. How could I after the scare you gave me yesterday, Mom? I think it must be resolved. Serenity¡®s husband is a nice guy. Her husband will always be there to sort things out whenever Serenity and her sister encounter difficulties. ¡°Serenity and her husband got married right away without knowing much about each other. Still, the husband is way better than the man her sister had married and known for twelve years. The scumbag Brown! I would beat the guy up if it were me. ¡± Mrs. Stone asked with concern, ¡°Serenity got married right away? Where is her husband from? What does he do?¡± ¡°I think he¡¯s working at York Corporation. Coincidently, hisst name is York, but Serenity said her husband is not rted to the York family that we know. ¡± There were plenty of people with the samest name, so Mrs. Stone did not think much about it. She merely hummed an acknowledgment. Chapter 503 Chapter 503 Chapter 503 ¡°Have you met Serenity¡¯s husband before?¡±Mrs. Stone asked her daughter. If Serenity and her sister turned out to be her nieces,Mrs. Stone, as the aunt, should assess the men for her nieces. ¡°I¡¯ve never met him before. He seems to be busy at work. You know only elites could join York Corporation, and work can get busy. I think her husband¡¯s working in higher management, so work must take up a lot of his time. ¡°Serenity¡¯s expression started to soften when she talked about him. I think they¡¯re developing feelings for each other. ¡± Elisa did not pay an awful lot of attention to Serenity¡¯s marriage. As she had loved before, Elisa could tell the subtle changes in Serenity toward her husband. After much thought, Elisa added, ¡°But they have not be a real couple. Their marriage is only in name at present. ¡± ¡°They entered the marriage without any feelings for one another. Everything should fall into ce since they¡¯re keeping the marriage in name while nurturing their rtionship. It¡¯s rare for a couple to be so grounded. ¡± Mrs. Stone was already taking Serenity¡¯s side before it was confirmed that thetter was her niece. She thought Serenity¡¯s sound judgment, independence, self¨Creliance, and strong will were so much like her. Meanwhile, it sounded like a car had pulled up outside the shop. ¡°That must be Serenity. ¡± Elisa walked out and saw Serenity. Since it was still raining outside, Elisa stood at the entrance and watched with a smile as Serenity got down from the car and approached under an umbre. ¡°I¡¯m sorry to keep you waiting, Elisa. ¡± Serenity was in a good mood after clearing the air with Zachary and stopping the petty guy from repeating history. She could not help but smile when she came back to Elisa¡¯s smiling face too. She shook off the raindrops on the umbre at the door and put the umbre,away before entering the shop with Elisa. ¡°The temperature really dropped today. ¡± Elisamented, ¡°I don¡®t feel cold though. ¡± Her clothes might not look thick, but they were warm. ¡°Serenity, this is my mom. ¡± Elisa introduced her mother to Serenity. Serenity andMrs. Stones locked eyes. Despite being hot with emotions,Mrs. Stone pulled herself together and let out a kind smile. ¡± You must be Seren. Elisa often talked to me about you. ¡± ¡°Hello,Mrs. Stone,¡± Serenity politely greetedMrs. Stone. She got her emotions in check even at the possibility that Mrs Stone might be her aunt, unlikeMrs. Stone who was emotional. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. She did not want to make a judgment too soon before the DNA test was done. ¡°Please have a seat,Mrs. Stone. I¡®ll pour you a ss of water. ¡± Mrs. Stone immediately replied, ¡°You don¡®t need to, Seren. Elisa and I have been in your shop for a while. I got a drink here. ¡± Mrs. Stone looked at the packed breakfast and insted cup on the cash register with heartache written in her eyes. ¡°I guess you haven¡®t had your breakfast, Seren. Have something to eat and then we¡®ll talk after. ¡°No matter what, you should have your meals on time. Don¡®t let yourself go hungry. ¡± Some people would be having their lunch by now. Mrs. Stone felt bad that Serenity had not had her breakfast. Elisa jumped in, ¡°Serenity, just take my advice. I didn¡®t have my meals on time back then and it didn¡®t help with my health. It took a while for me to get better. Now, my mom will drag me out of bed for breakfast between seven to eight o¡¯clock in the morning even if I were to sleep at three. ¡± Mrs. Stone red at her. ¡°You¡®re one to talk. ¡± Elisa stuck her tongue out cheekily. ¡°I have no shame. Of course, I¡®ll talk. ¡± Amused, Serenityughed. Chapter 504 Chapter 504 Chapter 504 ¡°My breakfast¡¯s probably not warm anymore. I¡¯ll go heat it up in the kitchen. Elisa, you¡®re a regr here. Please keepMrs. Stone entertained. ¡± Elisa replied with a smile, ¡°Don¡®t worry. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. My mom and I won¡¯t be strangers. Your shop is home to me. ¡± Serenity thought to herself, ¡®My shop is not up to your standard with the wealth your family owns. She took the breakfast packed by Zachary to the kitchen and heated it up before enjoying her meal in the kitchen. Zachary made her hot cocoa. Thanks to the insted cup, the drink was still warm. Her arms and legs were feeling cold since the weather turned chilly, and her Aunt Flo came to visit as well. Cupping the insted cup, Serenity felt the warmth in her belly after taking a sip of hot cocoa. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Her phone rang. While sipping on her hot cocoa, she pulled out her phone for a look. It was Zachary. She took the call. ¡°Are you at the shop?¡± Zachary looked at the time before calling. ¡°Yes, I¡®m at the shop. ¡± ¡°What are you eating?¡± ¡°The breakfast you lovingly packed me this morning. I¡®m now drinking the hot cocoa you made me. The cocoa tastes nice and light, and the hint of cinnamon really brings out the sweetness. ¡± Zachary told her off, ¡°What time is it, and you¡®re only having your breakfast now?¡± ¡°I wouldn¡®t have to take my breakfast now if a certain petty fool didn¡®t just turn around and run away. ¡± Zacharymented, ¡°That¡®s on me. I promise I won¡®t do that again. ¡± ¡°Don¡®t give me any promises. That¡®s just how you are. You can¡¯t change that. ¡± Serenity added with a giggle. ¡°I don¡¯t want the whole thing to blow up in your face again. You have a good-looking face. It wouldn¡¯t be nice for it to be covered in smut after having things blown up in your face. ¡± Zachary was speechless. Other than Nana, Serenity was the only one who would embarrass him. ¡°Are youing over for lunch? I might not have time to make lunch though. I probably might eat out. ¡± She intended to treat Elisa andMrs. Stone to lunch. ¡°IsMs. Stone at your shop?¡± ¡°Yeah. I¡¯m going to buy them lunchter. Elisa has been a huge help to me. ¡± Zachary grumbled in his mind. ¡®I helped you a lot too, but you never treat me to a meal. ¡® Still, he said, ¡°I¡¯ll wire you some money. Take them to a hotel for lunch. I can¡¯t get away from work this afternoon, so I¡¯m not going over. ¡± Serenity responded with a grin, ¡°I have money. Don¡¯t wire me any. Don¡¯t worry. I may be stingy, but I won¡¯t take someone likeMrs. Stone to a food truck. ¡± She was not stingy anyway. Instead, Serenity was good with her money, spending on the necessities only. Serenity and Zachary were living the good life now, but that was because they did not have a child together. Once a baby came along, it would take a huge hit on their money and that could burn a hole in their pockets. ¡°Achoo!¡± Serenity sneezed. Having caught that on the call, Zachary felt bad and med himself for it. ¡°You must have caught a cold since you got out of the car without a coat. It was pouring and windy earlier. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine. I sneezed because you missed me. ¡°Don¡¯t forget. I¡¯m drinking the hot cocoa you made me. ¡± Zachary grinned. ¡°Okay. I miss you. I really miss you. I guess you don¡¯t miss me since I didn¡¯t sneeze. ¡± Serenity opened her mouth, not knowing what to say. She started it by saying the sneeze meant that he missed her. Now, he was trying to get back at her by making her say that she missed him too. Well, he got another thinging if he expected her to say it out loud. Chapter 505 Chapter 505 Chapter 505 ¡°Is Shawn gone?¡± Zachary had not forgotten about his love rival. ¡°I didn¡®t see him when I came back. Are you still jealous?¡± Zachary fell silent for a while before replying, ¡°Well, you said that¡®s how I am. I guess jealousy might be a habit of mine. ¡± Josh and Grandma May would be throwing shade at him if they were around. Serenity chuckled. ¡°I should make you eat your greens every day then. ¡± Since he enjoyed turning green with envy, she might as well serve up all the greens he could eat. ¡°I love to eat whatever you make me. ¡± ¡°Zachary, you sure have honeyed lips. What¡®s up with all the sweet talk recently?¡± Zachary twitched by the corner of his lips. Nana oftenined about hisck of sweet nothings to Serenity. Now that he had given it a go, Serenity fussed about his honeyed lips. She probably did not like sweet talk. ¡°I don¡®t want to take up more of your time. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity was the first to end the call. Zachary moved the phone away from his ear and stared at the mobile screen for a bit while murmuring under his breath, ¡°She didn¡®t even say she misses me. ¡± Putting down his phone, Zachary quickly got his act together and threw himself into his busy work Serenity finished the hot cocoa and washed the instion cup clean. She then took out some fruits from the fridge and gave them a good wash before cing them on a fruit tter. She carried the fruit tter out. Mrs. Stone and her daughter were sitting at the cash register. ¡°Mrs. Stone. ¡± Serenity put the fruit tter in front ofMrs. Stone. ¡°Have some,Mrs. Stone. ¡± ¡°¡°Thank you. ¡± Mrs. Stone expressed her gratitude. With Serenity sitting down,Mrs. Stone did not beat around the bush and went straight to the point. ¡°Serenity, you must know why I¡¯m here today. I was separated from my sister at eight years old. It has been fifty years, and in these fifty years, my sister has always been on my mind. ¡°I worried whether she was doing fine at the adoptive parents¡® ce. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. I worried she would forget about me. After she was adopted, I often asked the director about her, but it was a shame I didn¡®t hear anything back. ¡°Once I had grown up and had the means, I tried many ways to track down my sister. It wasn¡¯t easy before, but with the boom of the inte, I thought it would make things easier. Still, my hopes were met with disappointment after disappointment. ¡± Elisa had ryed these details to Serenity before. ¡°After I saw your sister and Sonny, my intuition told me that you¡¯re my sister¡®s daughters. Sonny looks very much like my sister when she was a child. I also saw your sister¡®s wedding photo at her ce. She takes after my sister. ¡°I was thinking. . Could youe with me to do a DNA test?¡± Seeing that Serenity did not say yes immediately,Mrs. Stone eagerly added, ¡°I can ept whatever the result may be. ¡± Elisa chimed in, ¡°Serenity, you could give us a few strands of your hair if you don¡®t have time to go with us. We can use your hair to do the DNA test without you being there. ¡± of course, it would be best if Serenity was willing to go with them and do a blood test at the testing center. ¡°Why don¡®t you go with my mom if you¡®re worried no one will watch your shop? I¡®ll stay and look after things here. ¡± Serenity waited until the mother and daughter were finished before responding, ¡°Hang on,Mrs. Stone, Elisa. I¡®m going to give my sister a call for a talk. I¡®ve told Elisa the circumstances around my mom. I¡®m touched that you¡®ve never given up the search for your sister, but¡­¡± Her mother had been dead for fifteen years. The oue would be hard forMrs. Stone to swallow Mrs. Stone teared up. She had been feeling down the whole day yesterday. The mention that her sister had probably left the world for fifteen years made her choke up. She could not get a word out. Chapter 506 Chapter 506 Chapter 506 With tears running downMrs. Stone¡¯s face, Serenity handed her a tissue and said apologetically, ¡°I¡¯m sorry,Mrs. Stone. ¡± ¡°Serenity. ¡± Mrs. Stone held her hands, choking in sobs. ¡°I¡¯m sorry about your childhood. I didn¡¯t find quick enough. Maybe your mom wouldn¡¯t have died if I tracked you down sooner. ¡± you Had her sister been located sooner,Mrs. Stone would have brought her to live in the city. Then, her sister would never have lost her life, together with her husband, in a tragic car ident in the little town. Although the DNA test had not been done, Serenity felt a lump in her throat and her eyes welling up after listening to whatMrs. Stone had to say. It would be great if her mom was still alive. ¡°Stop crying, Mom. Dad told me to keep an eye on you and not to let you cry. You had been crying all day yesterday. ¡± Elisa took the tissue from Serenity and patted her mother¡¯s tears dry while consoling her, ¡± Mom, you can take the DNA test with Serenity. If ites back positive, at least you still have Serenity and Liberty. Mrs. Stone wiped away her tears. ¡°I can¡¯t stop myself from getting emotional. ¡± Back then,Mrs. Stone and her sister lost both their parents at a young age too. Without the means to raise her sister,Mrs. Stone had to be apart from her sister. The separation was for fifty long years. Now thatMrs. Stone finally got word about it, it turned out her sister was long gone. Despite being known as the strong and tough superwoman,Mrs. Stone was beyond heartbroken. She resented the unfairness of the world. It took the two girls quite an effort to pacifyMrs. Stone before Serenity had the chance to call Liberty. After getting her sister¡¯s opinion, Serenity agreed to do the DNA test withMrs. Stone. ¡°I¡¯ll watch the shop for you,¡± Elisa volunteered. Serenity grabbed the car keys and walked around the cash register, uttering, ¡°I¡¯ll close the shop. Let me buy you lunchter. ¡± With her craftworking to mind, Serenity made her way back and grabbed a few crafts to give toMrs. Stone. ¡°Mrs. Stone, I made these myself. The little trinkets aren¡¯t worth much, but they¡¯re my handicrafts. These are for you. ¡® Mrs. Stones took the crafts andplimented her, ¡°Your handicrafts are beautiful. I love them. ¡± that¡¯s not fair, Serenity. You only gave me a maneki¨Cneko while my mom got a few. They¡®re prettier than my maneki¨Cneko. ¡± Mrs. Stone nagged, ¡°You can ce an order on Serenity¡®s online shop if you want more. ¡± Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Let me know what you want. I¡®ll make a few to your preference. ¡± Elisa¡®s maneki¨Cneko was supposed to be for Zachary, but Serenity gave it to Elisa instead. Zachary threw a tantrum because of that too. ¡°I need to go back and think about it. I¡®ll let you know once I get an idea. I¡®ll order through your website and boost your sales. ¡± These little knick¨Cknacks were not worth much money, but they were exquisite. Elisa was a big fan and had the money to buy them. She would order from Serenity so long as thetter could make it. ¡°Thank you in advance. I owe it to you for rmending my business all around. ¡± Serenity took the mother and daughter out before closing up the shop. ¡°Elisa, I¡®ll ride in Serenity¡®s car. ¡± Mrs. Stone wanted to know more about her sister, so she chose to ride with Serenity to the DNA testing center. ¡°Look at my mom, Serenity. She¡®s picking you over me before the test result is even out. ¡± Serenity burst intoughter. ¡°Mrs. Stone will always love you the most. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Elisa was well¨Cloved by the Stone family. Chapter 507 Chapter 507 Chapter 507 While on the way to the DNA testing center, Serenity received a wired transfer from Zachary for fifty thousand dors. Afraid that she might not ept the money, Zachary included a text message to her. ¡°Seren, i¡®ll take it as you don¡®t see me as your husband if you don¡®t ept the money. The husband is supposed to make money for the wife to spend. ¡± Serenity read the text message and had a big smile on her face. Zachary had learned to guilt her into epting things. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. She was not in a hurry to ept the transaction. Once at the DNA testing center, she waited until Mrs. Stone¡®s and her blood were drawn before epting the fifty thousand dors. With the money her husband gave, Serenity generously took Mrs. Stone and her daughter to have lunch at a five¨Cstar hotel. The five¨Cstar hotel Serenity was most familiar with in all of Wiltspoon was the Wiltspoon Hotel. The Wiltspoon Hotel was a hotel under York Corporation¡®s gship. The Yorks and the Stones were not on good terins. In fact, they werepetitors. It only dawned on Serenity when they were already at the hotel. Serenity apologetically said to Mrs. Stone. ¡°How about another restaurant instead, Mrs. Stone?¡± Getting the message, Mrs. Stone smiled and replied, ¡°It¡®s fine. I used toe here a lot for client meetings when I was running thepany. ¡± She then nced at her daughter. Elisa could take a hint. She understood the meaning behind the look from her mother. With her face falling, Elisa remarked, ¡°It¡®s not like I¡®ll run into him here, Mom. So what if he¡®s really here?¡± Despite her heart breaking into pieces, Elisa forced herself to let go of her feelings the moment she saw the wedding ring on Zachary¡®s finger. Alice said to stay away from unfaithful men because there were plenty of good men out there. It would not be hard for Elisa to find a husband who was as brilliant as Zachary and only had eyes for her. Seeing that the mother and daughter did not mind. Serenity led them into the hotel. Although the lobby manager recognized Serenity, he did not dare to address the missus out loud. Instead, he led the trio to the lift in a friendly manner. Once the trio took the lift to the higher floor, the lobby manager was returning to his post when he stopped in his tracks. He looked back at the lift and mumbled to himself, ¡°Aren¡¯t the missus¡¯s twopanions Mrs. and Miss Stone?¡± The mother and daughter looked familiar to the lobby manager. If he was right, were the missus with the Stone family? Did Mr. Zachary know about this? With this huge question mark in mind, the lobby manager murmured under his breath and walked on when he saw a few men striding in with their security detail. The few men strolling ahead were Mr. Zachary, Mr. Callum, and Mr. Bucham. The other men must be important clients. The lobby manager took quick paces over. Callum was reminded of the torn look on the lobby manager¡¯s face every time he saw him. It tickled Callum¡¯s funny bones for sure. ¡°Mr. Zen,¡± Callum greeted the lobby manager amiably. Mr. Zen replied, ¡°How can I help you, Mr. Callum? ¡°Ah, that reminds me. ¡± Mr. Zen whispered to Callum, ¡°Mr. Callum, the missus brought two people in a few minutes ago. She picked the supreme lounge for lunch. The two people she came in with appear to be Mrs. Stone and Miss Stone. ¡± Stopping short, Callum asked in hushed tones, ¡°Did you get a clear look? Was it really the missus?¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, I have keen eyes. I recognize the missus since Mr. Zachary had brought her here before. ¡± It was the missus they were talking about. People in his line of work must take note of her appearance from the first encounter. Chapter 508 Chapter 508 Chapter 508 ¡°Alright. I got it. Carry on with your work. ¡± Catching up to the group, Callum approached his cousin and said, ¡°Zack, Mr. Zen told me that he saw your wife with Mrs. Stone and Miss Stone a few minutes ago. They picked the supreme lounge for lunch. ¡± The lounge was the most exclusive private dining room at the Wiltspoon Hotel. Those with thin wallets would not pick the supreme lounge to dine in. Nevertheless, Serenity had to pick the supreme lounge to wine and dine with Mrs. Stone. ¡°Got it. ¡± Zachary was not at all surprised by the news. ¡°We won¡®t run into each other,¡± Zacharymented in a husky voice. He would normally take the clients to the presidential suite on the top floor which was on a different floor from the supreme lounge. Zachary had a private lift that was not avable to hotel guests unless he brought then in himself. There was no chance for the couple to meet unless it was at the lift. Callum kept his mouth shut, seeing that his cousin was confident. Zachary was the one ying the pauper anyway. It was his business if Serenity caught him and he blew his cover. The rest of the family members were just there to watch the whole thing blow up in Zachary¡®s face. Although Zachary¡®s group did note across Serenity¡®s party, Hank and Jessica wereing out of another lift when they saw a glimpse of Zachary going into the private lift. Hank thought the silhouette looked familiar, but the lift closed before he had a closer look. The security detail did not follow Zachary upstairs. Picking up on Hank¡®s prying eyes, they turned and red at Hank. With the angry looks scaring the hell out of Hank, he immediately pulled Jessica and took off. ¡°What were you looking at, Hank?¡± ¡°Are these men Mr. York¡®s security team?¡± Hank asked Jessica. ¡°How would I know if they¡®re Mr. York¡®s security team? I¡®ve never met Mr. York. How could I remember his security detail?¡± Those who could recognize Mr. York¡¯s security personnel must be people who mingled with him. Jessica hoped she could be the lucky one. It was a shame that she was not. Mr. York was a legend. Yet, Jessica never had the opportunity to meet him in person. ¡°The man going into that lift as we wereing out of the lift looks like Serenity¡¯s husband, Zachary. ¡± While strolling along, Jessica nced at Hank and remarked sarcastically, ¡°Are you saying that Mr. York is your sister¨Cinw¡®s husband? Do you think she¡®s meant to live a rich life?¡± Come to think of it, Hank believed Zachary could not possibly be the great Mr. York. ¡°I wonder what Mr. York¡®s name is. If I can find out his name¡­¡± Jessica replied, ¡°I remember we used to be able to search for Mr. York¡®s name online. He has an old name, but now we can¡®t look up his name anymore. I guess Mr. York doesn¡®t want anyone to know his name. I searched his name a few years back, but I can¡®t remember it now. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡± Mr. York had appeared to keep his name anonymous. Whoever looked up his name on the inte now would not be able to find anything. All searches would only lead to Mr. York. This was the first thing Zachary did when he got married to Serenity. He did not want Serenity to stumble upon the fact that he was the heir of the York family. ¡°Serenity¡®s husband has thest name, York, and so does Mr. York. I have caught a glimpse of Mr. York twice, but I never got a good look at his face. Still, the figure looks awfully familiar. ¡± Jessica did not like what she was hearing. She mocked, ¡°You said it yourself. All you saw was a figure. Did you get a good look? York might not be amonst name, but there isn¡®t only one York family in the city. Serenity¡®s husband just so happens to have the samest name. That¡®s all. ¡± Chapter 509 Chapter 509 Chapter 509 ¡°Do you think we¡¯d turn out fine if Serenity¡¯s husband was rted to the wealthiest Yorks? Your sister¨Cinw would¡¯ve trampled all over us with the help of Mr. York. ¡± Thinking about the bad things he had done, Hank believed Jessica had a point. Hence, he quickly let go of the matter. Mr. York was way up there while Serenity was not even worth the mention. She was not blessed in life to be Mr. York¡¯s wife. The pair were lovey¨Cdovey as they walked out of the hotel. Hank and Jessica came across Liberty at the hotel entrance. Liberty was alone. While Sonny was asleep, Liberty left Mrs. Lane at home to look after Sonny, so she could wait for Hank and Jessica here. Liberty onlyy in wait here for them because she deduced through the information and evidence provided by Zachary that Hank often brought Jessica to dine at the Wilt spoon Hotel. Although she had a falling out with Hank, it still hurt Liberty badly. After tying the knot with Hank, Liberty gave him a son, ran the household, and often attended to the needs of his parents and sister¡¯s family. Yet, Hank would use her of financial dependence, spending money recklessly, and doing nothing at home. Hank called her useless and a glutton because Liberty frequently asked Serenity for help even though she was only looking after a child. Liberty would not be able to produce enough milk if she did not consume more food. Hank criticized her for trying to starve their son. Sonny was breastfed until a year old. Hank was stingy toward his wife. On the rare asion of a good mood, he would take her out to the food trucks. The ce could fill her belly without costing a lot. However, Hank would often bring Jessica to dine at the Wiltspoon Hotel, check on Jessica¡¯s well¨C being, send gifts, and treat her like a princess. Seeing that it was Liberty, Jessica tauntingly clung onto Hank¡¯s arm. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Liberty did not miss her provoking gesture. Hank stopped in his tracks before leading Jessica to draw close to Liberty. He asked coldly, What are you doing here? Where¡¯s Sonny? Didn¡¯t you say that Sonny couldn¡¯t leave your side since he¡¯s scared stiff? ¡°Your sister demanded fifty thousand dors from my sister as compensation for Sonny¡¯s mental anguish. What? Are you passing the buck on Sonny now that you have the money? *L You¡®re just using Sonny as an excuse to ask for more money, right?¡± Solemnity was written all over Liberty¡¯s eyes. Raising her hand, she gave Hank a p on the cheek. Smack! A vivid handprint emerged on Hank¡®s face. ¡°Are you even human, Hank?¡± Liberty resentfully had her finger up at Hank¡®s nose as she yelled, ¡°You don¡®t even feel sorry that your son was beaten up by your nephew. Never mind that you didn¡®t stand up for Sonny, but you were throwing out cynical remarks when my sister sought justice for Sonny. You¡®re less than scum!¡± Jessica tried to push Liberty andshed out, ¡°Fat cow! Who are you to touch my man?¡± Liberty retaliated by shoving Jessica out of the way and pping her too. She smirked. ¡°He¡®s the husband of a fat cow like me so long as we aren¡®t divorced. Who do you think you are?¡± Jessica wanted to hit back. ¡°Jessica. ¡± Hank pulled Jessica behind him to protect her before saying to Liberty, ¡°Why were you waiting for us here?¡± Liberty replied with an equally icy tone, ¡°We need to talk. Come with me. ¡± She then turned on her heel and went off. Spotting her sister¡®s car by chance, Liberty paused her footsteps but soon continued her journey to her bike. Her sister had enough trouble in thest two days because of her. Liberty decided not to bother her sister today. Chapter 510 Chapter 510 Chapter 510 Jessica gave Hank a tug and asked, ¡°What does the fat cow want to talk to us about?¡± ¡°She didn¡®t agree to my terms of the divorce. I guess it¡®s probably to further talk about the divorce. ¡± The divorce proceedings would take some time. Liberty probably did not want to wait for another second after what happened to Sonny. Hank took Jessica to his car. Once they got into the car, Hank leaned over and heartbrokenly caressed Jessica¡®s face. ¡°Does it hurt?¡± ¡°What about you?¡± Hank felt his own cheek. ¡°It hurts, but the thing with Sonny got her riled up. I can take a p from her so she could let off steam. ¡± Jessica touched where she was pped and said, ¡°Hank, since she¡®s in a rush to finalize the divorce, the odds are in your favor to name your terms. It¡®d be best if she gets nothing. ¡°Let her go to court to file for divorce if she¡®s not willing to ept your terms. We have the time and money to drag this out. ¡± . Hank answered, ¡°Sure. Let¡®s go see what she wants to talk about. ¡± The pair believed they had the upper hand on Liberty as Liberty was in a hurry to divorce. They could make Liberty leave the marriage without a penny to her name. With that in mind, Jessica stroked her cheek with her lips curling up smugly Liberty picked a milkshake caf¨¦ to have the discussion with the scumbag and wh*re. After taking a seat, Liberty asked for juice and watched aloofly as Hank entered the caf¨¦ arm in arm with Jessica They were acting mushy to get to her head. Liberty smirked. She should thank Jessica for showing her the nasty side of Hank. She was happy to give up this kind of man to Jessica. As Hank and Jessica approached, they caught sight of a yellow envelope on the table. With his eyes gleaming, Hank sat down and nonchntly asked, ¡°What is this?¡± Liberty slid the yellow envelope across the table to Hank. Hank thought it was the divorce papers signed by Liberty. However, he realized that was not the case as the envelope was heavy when he picked it up. Curious, Jessica drew close to see what was inside the envelope. ¡°Hank, we can revisit our discussion regarding the divorce after you read the contents. ¡± Liberty picked her ss of juice up for a sip. ¡°The one you¡¯re holding is a copy. The original file is with me. You can tear it up if you want. I can make more copies of it. ¡± Color drained from his face as he read the stuff inside the envelope. It was proof of his cheating and transfer of assets. There was a record of the gifts and money spent on Jessica. Liberty knew about everything. ¡°Hank, do you think you can dismiss me with thirty thousand dors if I file a divorce along with the evidence?¡± Liberty was pleased to watch Hank¡¯s expression turning ck. Picking his head up, Hank gave Liberty the evil eye. Liberty showed no fear as she looked him back straight in the eye. ¡°Who gave this to you, Liberty?¡± The content included receipts of hismissions and money saved in his father¡¯s bank ount. There was evidence that he saved all the money in an ount under his father¡¯s name. Hank had only told Jessica about this. Apart from his father who knew a little about the secret stash, none of his family members was aware of the bank ount. Although his father knew about the bank ount, he had no clue as to how much was saved in there. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. How did Liberty collect the evidence? Chapter 511 Chapter 511 Chapter 511 Liberty said, ¡°It¡¯s none of your business where I got these, Hank. If I showed your boss all themissions you¡¯ve been taking, do you think you can still be a manager at Waltham Electronics?¡± Serenity reminded Liberty not to show Hank the evidence but to scare him verbally. Liberty knew Hank well enough and felt that Hank would not feel threatened if there was no evidence. So, she made a copy of the evidence that Zachary¡¯s friend had collected. Even if Hank tore it up, she could still make a lot of copies. With such evidence, Hank was willing to give in and discuss the divorce terms with Liberty just so he could keep his job. Liberty had no idea that Zachary had instructed Josh to suppress Waltham Electronics and what awaited Hank and Jessica was an employee termination letter. Hank¡¯s expression was extremely distressed as he stared at Liberty. Liberty used to work at Waltham Electronics as a finance director. At that time, she was more capable than Hank and he could not admit that he was under a lot of pressure. He felt he was inferior to Liberty, and his self¨Cesteem took a hit, so he proposed to her. They had known each other for more than ten years and dated for several years, so Liberty thought that they had a solid rtionship. Liberty was also ready to marry Hank. Thus, when Hank proposed, she happily agreed and prepared for their wedding. Hank and his family agreed to all the conditions she requested. Hank treated her better than before and became more considerate of her. Finally, he managed to persuade Liberty to resign after marriage so she could stay home and prepare for pregnancy. After getting Liberty pregnant, Hank looked forward to the arrival of their child. He was no longer pressured at thepany without Liberty working there as a strong contender. Gradually, he got the boss¡¯s appreciation, a promotion, and a sry increment. That was how Hank got to his managerial position. On the other hand, after Liberty became a wife and a mother, she only cared about their small home and child. She gradually lost touch with her former colleagues and society. While she was breastfeeding, Liberty ate more for her son¡¯s sake and gained weight because of Hank had sessfully rewritten Liberty¡¯s future so she could only live by being dependent on him. To be honest, Hank did not n to divorce Liberty yet. He nned to wait until Sonny started kindergarten before he divorced Liberty. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. That way, his parents could take over the task of taking care of Sonny. This was all unexpected. After Hank finally drove Serenity out of his house, Serenity married Zachary, and his ns gradually evolved out of his control. Perhaps he had made the wrong move. He should not have listened to his mother and sister to drive Serenity away or made a fuss about taking in his nephew for junior high. If Serenity had stayed with them, Hank and Liberty might not have turned against each other so quickly. After Jessica saw the evidence, her face turned glum. Jessica nudged Hank, who was still ring at Liberty. Hank was pulled back from his faraway thoughts and saw Liberty drinking a ss of juice calmly. He felt that Liberty had lost weight, but did not know whether it was because Liberty had a difficult time adapting to returning to the workforce or because of what happened with Sonny. Liberty was quite the beauty before marriage. Chapter 512 Chapter 512 Chapter 512 Liberty¡¯s beauty disappeared when she became fat. Hank ruined Liberty. ¡°Liberty, what do you want?¡± Hank softened his tone and asked. ¡°Give me the original copy of this evidence and I¡¯ll try to meet your request as best as I can. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Then, we can part on good terMs. ¡± Now, Hank had nearly two million dors in savings. If he did not talk it out with Liberty, she would sue him, and the evidence she had was to her advantage. Hank was at a disadvantage, and the court would most likely force him to share half of his assets with Liberty. If Liberty handed over the evidence of Hank eptingmissions to Hank¡¯s boss, Hank would not be able to keep his managerial position even if his boss did not fire him. Besides, Hank receivedmissions from his customers and helped them do things that cost the company losses. If his boss investigated him and found out about this, Hank would not be able to keep his job. His boss might even spread the word about his behavior, making it difficult for him to find a job in the future. This would affect his career. With his future and interests at stake, Hank had to stay humble and discuss the divorce with Liberty calmly even though he really wanted to strangle Liberty at that moment. ¡°I won¡¯t ask for more than my share, just what I deserve. I won¡¯t ask for a cut of your house and car either, but you have topensate me in other ways. ¡± Liberty stated her condition. ¡°I won¡¯t ask you for the renovation costs. Since I paid for it, I¡¯ll take it back myself. ¡± As long as Hank agreed to the terms and went through the divorce procedures, Liberty would hire a group of workers and smash up the refurbishments she paid for initially. She also wanted them to scrape the ster off the walls. Liberty would return the house in whatever condition Hank bought it at. . ¡°I¡¯ll take Sonny¡¯s custody, and you¡¯ll give three thousand dors a month for child support. With your ie, this isn¡¯t considered a big amount. Sonny¡¯s your son too, so I think it¡¯s only fair, right? ¡°After Sonny turns eighteen, you don¡¯t need to pay child support anymore, and I won¡¯t limit the number of times you visit Sonny. When you finally remember that you have a son and 1/2 want to see him, you can do so whenever you want. ¡± Hank¡¯s face turned gloomy again. Jessica mumbled, ¡°You didn¡¯t earn a penny after marriage. Why are you asking for money so boldly now?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t earn a penny, but I married him and contributed to the family in other ways so he didn¡¯t have to worry about anything and concentrate on work. That¡¯s my effort, so you can¡¯t say that I didn¡¯t contribute anything just because I didn¡¯t go to work. ¡°I didn¡¯t ask for his personal property before marriage, and his ie after marriage belongs to the both of us. What I asked for is what I deserve, so why should I be embarrassed to take it? He bought you so many expensive gifts using our joint money. Did he ever ask me for my opinion? ¡°Ms. Yates, did you return those gifts to me? If I file awsuit, you¡¯ll have to return everything that he gave you too. ¡± Jessica was speechless. ¡°Hank, you may think that you¡¯ll suffer a loss if I take so much from you at once. But think about it. As long as you can keep your current job, you can earn more than a million dors a year with your current ie. After our divorce, you can continue to takemissions, and you and your lover here can be together openly. ¡°Ms. Yates was a promising youngdy when she became your mistress, so you can¡¯t let her down, right? ¡°If your rtionship is exposed, it won¡¯t be good for both your reputations. Don¡¯t you feel bad if others speak ill of Ms. Yates?¡± Hank was silent. It killed him thinking that he had to give Liberty more than a million dors at once. Chapter 513 Chapter 513 Chapter 513 After a long silence, Hank said, ¡°Liberty, if I agree to your condition of dividing the property, will you really give me all the evidence you have and promise not to report me to my boss?¡± ¡°As long as I get what I deserve, I promise that I won¡¯t take any revenge against you. ¡± However, Liberty could not guarantee that Serenity or Zachary would not do anything. After pondering for a while, Hank said, ¡°I can give you the money, but can¡¯t give you Sonny¡¯s custody. Sonny is my flesh and blood, and my parents love Sonny. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± ¡°I won¡¯t give up on Sonny¡¯s custody. ¡± Hank was afraid that if he gave Liberty the custody of Sonny, his parents would kill him when he returned home. Besides, Sonny was his son and his only child at present, so he was reluctant to give up Sonny. Liberty raised her hand and sshed her unfinished juice on Hank¡¯s face. ¡°Hank, how do you still have the nerve to fight for Sonny¡¯s custody? How dare you im Sonny as your flesh and blood and your parents¡® grandson. Just look at how you all treated Sonny. ¡°Sonny still cries a lot, and the bruises on his face haven¡¯t subsided. Didn¡¯t you cause enough harm to Sonny? Will you only be satisfied when Sonny dies because of your family?¡± Hank looked pathetic with his face stained with juice. He was also irritated by Liberty¡¯s actions. Jessica hurriedly took out a tissue and helped him wipe the juice off his face. She then said to Liberty, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you want to talk properly? Why did you ssh Hank with juice and stain his suit? Will you pay for his dry cleaning?¡± ¡°Ms. Yates, I think you haven¡¯t figured out the situation yet. ¡± Liberty said sarcastically, ¡°Before our divorce is finalized, Hank is legally still my husband, so what¡¯s his is also mine. Ms. Yates, what right do you have to ask me to pay for his dry cleaning? Who the hell are you?¡± Jessica was so angry that her face turned red. ¡°Jessica. ¡± Hank said gently, ¡°I¡¯m fine. Don¡¯t get mad because of her. Otherwise, I¡¯ll feel bad for you. ¡± Jessica said softly, ¡°But I feel bad for you. ¡± Liberty looked with mocking eyes at the two people showing off their affection for each other. Hank waspletely dead to her. Did Hank think that Liberty would get agitated if he and Jessica acted lovey¨Cdovey? That would just make Liberty nauseous. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Hank suppressed his anger and said, ¡°What happened with Sonny was an ident. Matthew and Lucas are still young and aren¡¯t sensible. We¡¯ve already dealt with them and taught Matthew a lesson. Matthew apologized to Sonny, and my sister paid fifty thousand dors for Sonny¡¯s emotional damage. ¡°So, just let it end here, okay? I can guarantee that this won¡¯t happen again. My parents have moved out of my sister¡¯s house and into my house, so they¡¯ll take care of Sonny wholeheartedly in the future. ¡± ¡°Sonny¡¯s custody belongs to me. ¡± ¡°If you promise to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, I¡¯ll transfer half of my savings to you right now. Then, we can go to the City Hall to finalize the divorce. ¡± It happened to be a Monday, so the City Hall was open. It was also just after lunch, so they still had time to go through the formalities. Transferring money to Liberty would also be easy since Hank was a VIP customer in the bank. Thus, he could get the transfer done quickly. ¡°Hank, I want to have a chat with Ms. Yates alone. Please give us some privacy. ¡± Hank and Jessica looked at each other. Jessica said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t let her bully me. You should go out first. I¡¯m curious about what she wants from me. ¡± ¡°Liberty, talk properly. Don¡¯t use your fists!¡± Chapter 514 Chapter 514 Chapter 514 Hank was worried that Liberty would get rough with Jessica if he was not there. When Hank thought about the day Liberty caught him and Jessica in the hotel that night, his legs felt weak. Liberty was brutal when she beat up Jessica. Liberty said coldly, ¡°I don¡¯t want to get my hands dirty by hitting her. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll return her to you in prime condition. ¡± ¡°Liberty, why can¡¯t I be here when it¡¯s our business?¡± Hank was still worried. Liberty fought back when he hit her and dared chase him down a few blocks with a knife. This made Hank realize that Liberty was capable of anything when she was angry. ¡°This is a negotiation between a wife and a mistress, so a scumbag like you can f*ck off. ¡± Hank was speechless. He red at Liberty, got up reluctantly, and walked out. Once Hank went out, Jessica raised her hand and brushed her hair away before she asked, ¡°So, what do you want to talk to me about? ¡°Liberty, Hank loves me now, so if you don¡¯t want to make this worse than it already is, I advise you to divorce Hank as soon as possible. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry. ¡± Liberty said calmly, ¡°I¡¯m not trying to take Hank from you. He doesn¡¯t care about me anymore, so there¡¯s no need for me to fight for him. ¡® 11 Liberty could live without Hank and the earth would still spin. Liberty might be even better off without Hank. ¡°Ms. Yates, you¡¯re younger than I was and just graduated from college when you met Hank. Do you really want to be a stepmother to a two¨Cand¨Ca¨Chalf year old boy?¡± Jessica froze. After a while, she said reluctantly, ¡°Sonny¡¯s very cute. I¡¯ll try my best to build a good rtionship with him. For Hank¡¯s sake, I¡¯m willing to raise Sonny. ¡± Liberty said sarcastically, ¡°Ms. Yates, you don¡¯t have to force yourself. Hank isn¡¯t here, so he won¡¯t find out what you really think. It¡¯s tough to be a stepmother. Even if you¡¯re sincere, people will still say you¡¯re a vicious stepmother. ¡°If you discipline Sonny, people will say that you bullied your stepson. If you don¡¯t care about him, they¡¯ll say that you let him fend for himself since he¡¯s not your biological son. No matter what you do, you¡¯re the one who will be med. ¡± Jessica¡¯s expression was unsettled. She did not want to be a stepmother to Sonny. Jessica was still young, and Hank would be her husband eventually, so she would definitely have her own children in the future. She would not have time or energy to take care of her own children, let alone other people¡¯s. Liberty was right. Being a stepmother was difficult because to outsiders, all stepmothers were vicious. Whether they did well or not, they were the ones who would be med. However, Hank wanted to fight for Sonny¡¯s custody, and Jessica¡¯s future inws did not want to give up Sonny. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Jessica was not married to Hank yet and did not have any say in the family, so she could not show her true colors for the time being. ¡°Liberty, Hank is the one who wants to fight for Sonny¡¯s custody, so it¡¯s useless even if you tell me this. Since I love Hank, I can also ept Sonny. ¡± Sonny would be taken care of by her future inws and would not live with her anyway. At most, they would just need to give him a monthly living allowance of three thousand dors. With Jessica¡¯s and Hank¡¯s ie, three thousand dors was nothing. It cost way more to buy a set of skin care products. A Chapter 515 Chapter 515 Chapter 515 Liberty said, ¡°Ms. Yates, you¡¯ll probably marry Hank after we get divorced. You¡¯re both young, so it won¡¯t be long before you have your own child. Are you willing to let Sonny share Hank¡¯s fatherly love with your child? ¡°Even if Hank said that his parents will take care of Sonny in his hometown, his parents will definitely feel sorry for Sonny and favor Sonny over your child. They¡¯ll also ask Hank to spend more time with Sonny and treat your child differently. ¡°Are you willing to let your child suffer like that? ¡°If I take Sonny, I will only ask Hank to pay three thousand dors a month for child support. Hank doesn¡¯t need to care about anything else. I won¡¯t me him even if he doesn¡¯t see Sonny again in the next decade. This will be the best solution with the least impact on you and your children. ¡°You don¡¯t have to see the kid that Hank and I share all the time either. I¡¯m guessing that when you look at Sonny, you¡¯ll think of my past with Hank. Hank and I have known each other for twelve years, having dated for seven years and were married for more than three years. That¡¯s much longer than your rtionship with him¡­ ¡°Can you really not be bothered? If Sonny is with me, you don¡¯t have to see him again. Maybe Hank will still visit Sonny in the beginning, but once you have your own child, his attention. will be on your child. ¡°Your child can have all his love. Isn¡¯t that great? Hank earns a lot, so in the future, all his money will be for you and your children. After Sonny turns eighteen, Hank won¡¯t need to pay child support anymore, and you can save a lot of money. ¡°Think about it. It¡¯s so expensive to get married now. The groom has to buy a house, a car, an expensive wedding gift, and hold a ceremony. All of that takes money. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. If Hank takes custody of Sonny, Hank might help Sonny to buy a house and a car in the future so that Sonny can get. married. That will just further deplete your children¡¯s share. ¡± Jessica was silent for a long time before she asked, ¡°What do you want me to do? Can you guarantee that you won¡¯t contact Hank again after you take custody of Sonny? If he wants to see Sonny, you can send Sonny to his parent¡¯s ce and let them meet there. ¡°Sonny¡¯s child support will be cut by half to a thousand and five hundred dors a month. You can¡¯t ask Hank for more money for Sonny¡¯s school or wedding in the future. But when Hank gets old, Sonny must fulfill his responsibility as a son. ¡°If you can do this, I¡¯ll persuade Hank to give up Sonny¡¯s custody and give it to you. ¡± Liberty looked at Jessica and said calmly, ¡°If I file for divorce, the judge will give Sonny¡¯s. custody to me since I¡¯ve been taking care of Sonny all this while. Moreover, I still have evidence of the Browns abusing Sonny, so Hank has no chance of winning. ¡°I¡¯m only willing to negotiate calmly for your sake, Ms. Yates. Anyway, you¡¯re the homewrecker, and you and Hank have already slept together. If you get pregnant, do child to be called an illegitimate child? your ¡°If you two live together and have a child as husband and wife, I can also sue Hank for bigamy. ¡°Sonny¡¯s child support must be three thousand dors a month, and not a penny less. I won¡¯t ask for a penny more either. If Hank fulfills his responsibility of raising Sonny, and when Sonny gets older, Sonny will naturally fulfill his responsibility as a son to support Hank. ¡± you want Liberty did not want Sonny to be responsible for supporting the scumbag Hank in the future if Hank refuses child support. Now that Liberty had the upper hand, she would fight for her son¡¯s child support. ¡°Of course, it¡¯ll be better if Hank pays for Sonny¡¯s child support in full. ¡± Jessica was silenced again. Liberty stopped talking, looked at Jessica quietly, and waited for her to think it through. After a long time, Jessica said, ¡°I can persuade Hank, but I can¡¯t guarantee that he¡¯ll listen. ¡± Chapter 516 Chapter 516 Chapter 516 Liberty smiled and said, ¡°Hank is currently obsessed with you, so he¡¯ll definitely listen to you. You should go and talk to him now. If he agrees to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, ask him to take some time off from the office so we can complete the divorce procedures this afternoon. ¡± ¡°The sooner he bes single, the sooner you can marry him and be the wife of Waltham Electronics¡® manager. Waltham Electronics has a good rep in the industry, with good prospects and scbility. If you be the manager¡¯s wife, you¡¯ll be better off than others in the office. ¡°The main thing is that he¡¯ll be yours in the future. You can spend however much he earns, and you don¡¯t have to sneak around with him anymore. You two can show your affection openly in public. I think most women want that, right? ¡°Hank is only thirty years old, and he¡¯s sessful. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. If you miss out on him, you might not be able to find someone better than him in the future. Ms. Yates, for your happiness, this is the time to shine!¡± After more pondering, Jessica said, ¡°You can borrow aptop from the caf¨¦ owner and type out the new divorce agreement. Then, sign your name and stamp your fingerprint on it. We¡¯ll go to City Hallter and finalize the divorce procedures. I¡¯ll go out now and persuade Hank to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody. ¡± ¡°Sure, but I¡¯ll only go to the City Hall to finalize the divorce once I¡¯ve received the money from the division of assets. Who knows whether the two of you will go back on your wordter?¡± Liberty was not stupid. She would notpromise again since she no longer loved Hank. Liberty had to be vignt so she would not suffer a loss. Jessica took out her phone and checked the time. It was already two o¡¯clock in the afternoon. If they were quick, they couldplete the divorce procedures the very same afternoon. ¡°Wait here. You should borrow aptop first and print out your divorce agreement. I¡¯ll go out and persuade Hank now. ¡± Jessica was also afraid that Hank and Liberty would dy this for too long and she would not be able to marry Hank. Moreover, the evidence that Liberty held onto was detrimental to Jessica and Hank. Hank finally got to his current position and had a high ie, so he could not destroy his own future. What Liberty said was reasonable too. Although the division of assets was painful at the moment, as long as they kept their jobs, Jessica and Hank could earn more than one million dors a year. Then, they would be able to regain the money they gave to Liberty in a year. If they drew a clear line now, whatever Hank earned in the future would have nothing to do with Liberty. Of course, before Jessica married Hank, she would ask Hank to add her name to the title deed, give her his sry ount, and hold a big wedding for her. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll print out the divorce agreement, sign it, and stamp my fingerprint on it while persuade Hank. ¡± you Jessica left her seat and walked out. She was ready to persuade Hank to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody with full force. Chapter 517 Chapter 517 Chapter 517 Hank was waiting outside, but he kept staring at the two women in the caf¨¦ for fear that Liberty would suddenly go mad and beat up Jessica. He was relieved when he saw Jessicaing out and hurried over to meet her. ¡°Jessica, she didn¡¯t do anything to you, did she?¡± Jessica touched her face and said, ¡°Just the p from earlier. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. After you left, she didn¡¯t touch me again. ¡± Hank was pped by Liberty too. He was distressed as he said, ¡°Jessica, I won¡¯t let her touch you ever again. ¡± He then asked, ¡°What did she say to you?¡± Jessica looked around. The two of them were standing on the sidewalk with many passersby, but no one paid any attention to them. When she saw Hank¡¯s concerned eyes, she asked, ¡°Hank, do you want to see me suffer?¡± ¡°Why would I want to see you suffer? I want to divorce Liberty because I don¡¯t want you to suffer anymore. ¡± Hank took her hand. ¡°Jessica, did she yell at you? I¡¯ll go in there and settle this with her. ¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s not that. ¡± Jessica pulled Hank back, who was about to enter the cafe. She said softly, ¡°Hank, I don¡¯t want to be Sonny¡¯s stepmother. ¡± Hank turned to look at her. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say that Sonny is cute? You said that you like Sonny very much and that you¡¯re willing to raise Sonny with me. ¡± Hank raised his voice a little. He was afraid that others would look at him, so he lowered his voice and said, ¡°Jessica, I know I¡¯m putting you in a difficult position of being Sonny¡¯s stepmother before we¡¯re married. But Sonny is my son, my flesh and blood, so he must stay with us. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll send Sonny back to my hometown so my parents will take care of him. My parents have also agreed to it, so he won¡¯t affect us. We can still have our privacy. ¡± Jessica was silent for a while before she said, ¡°Do you think I can¡¯t bear a child? I¡¯ll have my own child one day, so I¡¯ll definitely be biased toward my child because Sonny¡¯s not mine. I can¡¯t treat Sonny equally. ¡°Other people will also call me a vicious stepmother. Do you want me to be reproached by others? ¡°Your parents can help you take care of Sonny now, but they¡¯re getting older, so how many years can they care for Sonny? In the end, Sonny will still have to come back to us. ¡± Hank said nothing. ¡°Hank, let¡¯s not fight for Sonny¡¯s custody, okay? I really don¡¯t want to be a stepmother as soon as I marry you. If you give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, you just need to give three thousand dors a month for child support. You don¡¯t have to do anything else and just watch as Liberty raises your son for you. Isn¡¯t that great? ¡°Sonny will always be your son, so it doesn¡¯t matter who takes custody of him. He¡¯ll still address you as his dad all the same when he grows up. As long as you pay for child support, he¡¯ll also fulfill his responsibilities as your son when you get older. You won¡¯t have to worry about so many things! ¡°Liberty said that if you give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, she won¡¯t ask for your help when Sonny goes to college or gets married. She¡¯ll bear all of those as his mother. That¡¯s a lot of money. ¡± * Chapter 518 Chapter 518 Chapter 518 Jessica pouted and said, ¡°Anyway, I don¡¯t want Sonny to share too much of your fatherly love with my future child. ¡± She did not want Hank to spend his money on Sonny. Jessica hoped that Hank¡¯s future ie would be spent on their small family¨Cher and her children. ¡°Liberty gave birth to Sonny, so she¡¯ll definitely do her best to raise him and educate him well. It¡¯ll be better for Sonny¡¯s development. If you fight for Sonny¡¯s custody, your parents will take care of him. Do you think your parents can educate Sonny well? ¡°A lot of grandparents spoil their grandchildren. Of course, if you want to see Sonny be someone who achieves nothing in the future, then forget what I said. I just think it¡¯s better for Sonny to follow Liberty. You¡¯re so busy with work, so how can you have time to teach Sonny? ¡°Children need a lot of attention and care. It takes a lot of effort to educate and nurture them. If Sonny didn¡¯t turn out to be sessful, others will put the me on you and me. They¡¯ll call me an evil stepmother and that¡¯s why you don¡¯t care for Sonny too. ¡°I¡¯m already suffering so much with you. Do you want me to bear more grievances?¡± Hearing Jessica¡¯s words, Hank said in a tangled voice, ¡°I promised my parents that I¡¯ll take custody of Sonny. ¡± If he gave up on Sonny¡¯s custody, he would not know how to exin it to his parents when he returned home. ¡°Sonny is your son, not your parent¡¯s son, so only you can make this decision. If you give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, they¡¯re still Sonny¡¯s grandparents. They can still visit him whenever they want. ¡± Hank said nothing. He had no time to care and nurture Sonny. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Jessica refused to resign and be a housewife after marriage like Liberty. If he sent Sonny back to his hometown for his parents to care for, Sonny would feel abandoned, which would be bad for Sonny¡¯s growth. Hank had never taken care of Sonny, but he still wanted the best for his son. Hank also hoped that Sonny would be sessful in the future and make him proud. ¡°Liberty is now using the caf¨¦ owner¡¯sptop to print the divorce agreement. If you¡¯re willing to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, you can go through the divorce formalities this afternoon. Then, you¡¯ll be single again, and we can be together openly. ¡°Hank, we¡¯re still young, and we¡¯ll have our own children in the future. We can even have two or three of them. The chances of Liberty getting married again are quite low with the way she looks right now. Sonny gives her the will to live, so you should allow her this as someone who used to love her. ¡± Hank was sessfully coaxed by Jessica, so he decided to give up on Sonny¡¯s custody. He then considered his parents¡® feelings and said, ¡°You can go in and tell Liberty to give me another day to think about it. I need to convince my parents so they won¡¯t trouble Liberty. ¡°I¡¯ll transfer the money to her as per her request tomorrow at two o¡¯clock in the afternoon. Then, we¡¯ll go to City Hall for the divorce procedures. ¡± Jessica thought that since it was only a day, she agreed and said, ¡°I¡¯ll go in and talk to her. ¡± Hank was convinced, so he believed he could also persuade his parents. As Jessica was going in, Liberty came out. She was holding two copies of the printed divorce papers with her name signed and her fingerprints stamped on them. ¡°Liberty. ¡± Hank said in a deep voice, ¡°Give me a day to convince my parents. Otherwise, they¡¯ll just bring trouble to you. They might even take Sonny away again. ¡°Wait for me at the entrance of the bank tomorrow at two o¡¯clock. I¡¯ll divide the property ording to your request, and then we¡¯ll go to City Hall to finalize the divorce. ¡± Chapter 519 Chapter 519 Chapter 519 Liberty heard what Hank said. Although she was disappointed that they could not finalize the divorce right away, she still agreed to his arrangements since it was only another day¡¯s wait. She handed the two signed divorce agreements to Hank and said, ¡°Take a look. If there¡¯s no problem, just sign your name. ¡± Hank took over the divorce agreement. In addition to the conditions she stated earlier, Liberty also promised that she would destroy all the evidence she had on the day of their divorce and promised that she would not take revenge on him. LE Hank was fine with it. He was just sad that he had to give Liberty more than a million dors and his son¡¯s custody. However, after some thought, Hank knew that he would earn the money back, so he just had to put up with it. ¡°I¡¯ll sign it. ¡± Hank said in a deep voice, ¡°See you tomorrow. ¡± Liberty nodded. Hank looked at her deeply for a moment before he hugged Jessica and prepared to leave. After taking two steps, Hank stopped and turned his head to ask, ¡°Liberty, can you tell me who gave you all that evidence?¡± That person investigated everything that Hank did thoroughly and even had evidence of it. Hank was frightened whenever he thought that Liberty had someone like that to help her. Hank was threatened. Thus, he agreed to Liberty¡¯s divorce terms for the sake of his future and because he thought that Liberty Inight have a backer. ¡°Is that important? I promise that once we finalize the divorce, I¡¯ll give the evidence to you and won¡¯t keep any copies. ¡± Hank was helpless when Liberty refused to tell him. He just hugged Jessica and left. He did not walk far when he received a call from his boss, who said something on the phone that made him let go of Jessica. He said something to Jessica and the two ran to their car. They got in the car quickly and drove away. Liberty stood there and looked in the direction of Hank¡¯s car. After a long time, she turned her gaze away and took out her phone to call her sister. ¡°Seren. ¡± Liberty was in a good mood and said, ¡°I¡¯ve discussed it with Hank. He promised to divide the property ording to my request. If everything goes ording to n, I¡¯ll also have custody of Sonny! ¡°Hank promised to go through the divorce formalities tomorrow afternoon. ¡± ¡°Liberty, is that true? That¡¯s great! I didn¡¯t expect you to negotiate with him so quickly. Did you show him the evidence?¡± Serenity said, ¡°Mhmm¡­ He won¡¯tpromise if I don¡¯t show him the evidence. He would even ask me to leave without a penny because I wanted to rush the divorce. ¡± Hank was ruthless when he wanted to be. ¡°Seren, are you still at the Wiltspoon Hotel? I saw your car when I went there to wait for Hank earlier. ¡± Serenity had invited Mrs. Stone and Elisa to a meal. They were done eating but remained at the hotel because they stayed back and chatted about her mother. This was so that Mrs. Stone could understand herte sister¡¯s life as a wife and mother. When she heard this, Serenity said, ¡°Liberty, why didn¡¯t you tell me when you saw my car? I would¡¯ve gone downstairs to pick you up, and we could¡¯ve had lunch together. ¡± Liberty smiled and said, ¡°I came to look for Hank after I had lunch. We¡¯ll have more opportunities to dine there in the future. It¡¯s more important to get rid of this scumbag Hank first. ¡± ¡°Did you and Mrs. Stone do a DNA test?¡± ¡°Yup. We¡¯ll know the results in a few days. ¡± Liberty was silent for a while before she said, ¡°So what if we know the results? Our mother passed away fifteen years ago¡­¡± She did not continue because she felt ufortable and wanted to cry. Liberty did not shed a single tear when she had to divorce Hank, but she could not help but cry when she thought about her mother. Serenity was also silent. ¡°Mrs. Stone is having a hard time epting it. She has been looking for her sister for decades, and when she finally found a clue, her sister is no longer in this world. ¡°Elisa said that her mother cried the entire day after she left your house yesterday. She didn¡¯t eat or drink. Elisa and her brothers were worried sick. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡± Chapter 520 Chapter 520 Chapter 520 Liberty¡®s tears suddenly streamed down her face. Her mother was unaware that her sister never gave up looking for her when she was alive. She did not get to reunite with her sister before she died. ¡°Seren, spend some time with Mrs. Stone. I¡®m going back to see Sonny. ¡± Liberty said as she suppressed the pain and quickly hung up the phone. She then squatted on the ground and covered her face to cry. Many passersby looked at her, but no one stopped for her. The owner of the caf¨¦ saw Liberty and knew that Liberty had borrowed herptop to print out a divorce agreement. She thought Liberty was upset because of the divorce, so she came out with a box of tissues. ¡°Miss¡­¡± The caf¨¦ owner patted Liberty on the shoulder. When Liberty looked up at her, she handed the tissues to Liberty andforted her. ¡°He doesn¡®t care about you anymore, so you should let him go. That way, you¡®ll feel better, and you can start a new life. ¡°If you¡®re sad, cry it all out. You¡®ll feel better afterward. ¡± ¡°Thank you. ¡± Liberty stood up, took the tissue, and wiped away her tears. She choked up and said, ¡°I don¡®t regret leaving a stingy man who abused me and cheated on me. I¡®m not crying for him. I just thought of my parents, who died in a car ident fifteen years ago¡­¡± The caf¨¦ owner patted Liberty¡®s shoulder sympathetically again. What a pitiful woman. Some people who were in their fifties and sixties still had parents living, while some lost their parents when they were young. No one could understand the kind of pain and regret these kids felt when they thought about how they could never repay theirte parents. ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯ll get going. My son is still waiting for me at home. ¡± ¡°Stay strong, girl! There¡¯s a rainbow after the rain. You can do this!¡± The stranger¡¯sfort warmed Liberty¡¯s heart. There were still many good people in this world. After thanking the caf¨¦ owner, Liberty walked to her e¨Cbike and was about to leave. ¡°Liberty. ¡± A hoarse and somewhat familiar voice called out to her. Liberty looked around and saw a car parked on the opposite side of the street. The person inside the car wound down the window. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Only then did Liberty notice that it was Duncan. She thought, ¡®Huh? Why did I bump into him?¡® Liberty felt that she was a little unlucky today. Wait, she did not hit his car this time, so why did she think that she was unlucky? Liberty, who came to her senses, suppressed the urge to ride away and she waved to Duncan in response to his greeting. Somehow, Duncan got out of the car and strode across the street. Liberty was speechless and thought, ¡®I didn¡¯t hit his car, right? ¡®I parked on this side, and his car is across the street. Did time and space collide?¡® Duncan quickly walked in front of Liberty and put one hand on Liberty¡¯s bike. She nced at his big hand and thought, ¡®Is he trying to prevent me from running away?¡® ¡°Didn¡¯t you take the day off to take care of your son?¡± Duncan asked. Chapter 521 Chapter 521 Chapter 521 Liberty nodded and answered, ¡°I took a few days off. Sonny was frightened, so I wanted to stay with him. ¡± ¡°Then what are you doing here? Where¡¯s your son?¡± Liberty was speechless. Should she tell the truth? Duncan looked around, but he did not see the strong and smart little boy. However, the boy was afraid of him. Every time he saw Duncan, he was so afraid that he would burrow into Liberty¡¯s arms as if Duncan was the devil. ¡°Sonny is taking a nap at home. Mrs. Lane is watching him, so I came out to run some errands. ¡± Duncan hummed and asked, ¡°What kind of errands?¡± When Liberty hesitated to speak, heughed and said, ¡°If you can¡¯t tell me, then forget it. I was just being nosy because I happened to see you passing by and remembered that you took leave. ¡°Well, carry on with your business. I¡¯ll leave now. ¡± Duncan retracted therge hand that was on Liberty¡¯s bike, turned around, and left. ¡°Take care, Mr. Lewis,¡± said Liberty. Duncan did not look back but raised his hand in goodbye. The two went their separate ways. In the hotel, Serenity spent a long time talking with Audrey and Elisa. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Both the mother and daughter only left when Darrell called them. Serenity sent them off at the entrance of the hotel before she turned and walked toward her own car. However, when she turned around, she saw a group of peopleing out of the hotel. Amongst the group were two people she recognized. It was Zachary and her brother-inw, Callum. She seemed to have seen the other one before, but his appearance did not ring any bells. Thest time she saw him was when he was with Zachary at Beans and Cream. They should be here to socialize with clients since there were several people that Serenity had never seen before. Following them were several tall men in ck. Were they bodyguards, or were they also employees of York Corporation? Zachary did not see his wife at first but his bodyguards did. They were responsible for clearing the way for him, so they habitually scanned the surroundings to see if there were any suspicious people around as soon as they came out. Then, they saw the missus standing not far away, looking straight at Zachary. The group of bodyguards instantly felt their souls leave their bodies. 1 All of them unanimously thought of two words, ¡®Oh no!¡¯ Missus was looking right at them. Zachary¡¯s identity was going to be exposed. ¡°Mr. Zachary, it¡¯s Missus. ¡± The person who reacted the quickest was Jim. He quickly notified Zachary and turned around to go back into the hotel. He had to hide. Missus remembered his appearance. ¡± In her eyes, he was just a substitute driver. If he followed Zachary, she would discover that he was lying Zachary, Callum, and Josh heard what Jim said while their clients could not hear it clearly. The moment Callum saw his sister-inw, he cursed in his heart, ¡®Zachary said we wouldn¡¯t bump into her, but we ended up bumping into her! ¡®We really can¡¯t speak in absolutes. ¡®Otherwise, we¡¯ll end up jinxing ourselves. ¡¯ Josh stopped in his tracks and deliberately let Zachary walk in front. He pulled away a little, afraid that he would get swept up by the storm. Zachary was the calmest of them all. That was because Audrey and Elisa were not around. Chapter 522 Chapter 522 Chapter 522 He could still act. ¡°Josh and Callum, you two apany the clients back to thepany. I¡¯ll go over and talk to Serenity. ¡± Zachary instructed the two in a low voice then walked toward Serenity inrge strides. The bodyguards naturally did not dare follow him. ¡°Did Mr. York see someone he knows?¡± The few clients watched in amazement as they saw Zachary walk toward an unfamiliar woman. After all, unless it was family, he usually kept women at least three meters away from him. ¡°Yeah, they¡¯re acquaintances. ¡± Josh smiled and ushered the clients toward their cars. Seeing that Josh did not n to borate, they knew their ce and stopped asking ¡°Seren. ¡± Zachary walked up to Serenity and stretched out his arms to straighten her jacket. ¡°What are you doing here? Did youe here just to wait for me because you knew I was meeting clients for business here?¡± The rain stopped at noon but it was still cold. Serenity saw the throng of men in suits getting in their luxury cars and driving away. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. She asked with a smile, ¡°Are those your colleagues? ¡°I invited Mrs. Stone and Elisa to have a meal here. I didn¡¯t expect to bump into you. ¡± Zachary looked at the luxury cars that were driving away and said, ¡°Yeah, they¡¯re my colleagues. Several clients we met today were notable bosses from otherpanies, and ourpany attached great importance to them, so many of my colleagues came to meet them today. ¡°Where¡¯s Mrs. Stone?¡± ¡°Mr. Stone called her, and she left with Elisa. Zachary, I did a DNA test with Mrs. Stone. The results will be out in a few days. ¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes flickered slightly, but the expression on his face remained unchanged. He said warmly, ¡°Let¡¯s wait for the results. For now, we¡¯ll pretend that nothing happened. ¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°I can¡¯t pretend that nothing has happened. I was worried that Elisa would suspect that I¡¯m trying to climb the socialdder, but it¡¯s veryplicated now¡­ I just wish my mom was still alive. ¡± Zachary reached out and embraced her by the shoulders, holding her while walking toward her car. ¡°Although your mom is no longer here, if Mrs. Stone is your aunt, it¡¯ll be great if you can reconnect with her. It¡¯ll be afort to Mrs. Stone as well. ¡± The greatest fear when finding the whereabouts of a loved one was when you ended up being the only person left in the family who was still alive. That was the most painful kind of conclusion there was. Although his mother-inw was gone, she left behind the two sisters. If Audrey could still reconnect with her nieces, her heart that was searching for her sister could more or less be soothed ¡°Yeah. I feel better now. ¡°Are you going to sit in my car? ¡°What? Does my wife not want to drive her husband to work?¡± Zachary said in a rare flirtatious tone after stuffing her into the car. He leaned into the car and sniffed the side of her cheek. Serenityughed. ¡°Sure. Get in and I¡¯ll take you to work. ¡± He said, ¡°I¡¯ll drive. ¡± He went around the car and got into the driver¡¯s seat. He then asked while fastening the seat belt, ¡°Who¡¯s watching the store?¡± ¡°I closed the store for the day. The students were having their finals in the past two days, and their winter holidays will most likely start next week. Once they¡¯re on holidays, stores like mine with students as their main market will have to rest. We¡¯ll close up early for the New Year¡¯s. ¡± Zachary said, ¡°Your online store won¡¯t close that early for the New Year¡¯s, right?¡± ¡°No, but even if I stop shipping temporarily, I¡¯ll still be very busy. There are too many orders, and I don¡¯t have enough in stock. I¡¯ll take advantage of the New Year¡¯s holiday to knit more. I¡¯ll be able to ship everything out after the new year. ¡± Zachary admonished, ¡°Don¡¯t overwork yourself, especially these days. Don¡¯t sit for long periods of time or you¡¯ll hurt your back easily. ¡± Serenity thought of how her waist felt ufortable from sitting for too long when Aunt Flo came to visit. Her heart warmed as she heard this, and she gave him a hum. Jim, who was hiding back in the hotel, only darede out when he saw Zachary leaving with Serenity. Chapter 523 Chapter 523 Chapter 523 Earlier when the entourage appeared, Serenity did not notice Jim leaving to the back of the hotel to hide. She also had no idea that the man sitting beside her, who had been caring for her and gave her all the tingly warmth in the cold, was actually a superb actor. She said to Zachary, ¡°My sister called earlier. She and Hank had agreed on the conditions for the divorce. ¡± ¡°How did it go?¡± ¡°All the properties under Hank¡®s name will be divided equally with my sister. She¡®s not asking for the house and car, but he has topensate an additional sum of money to her. Sonny¡®s custody will belong to my sister, and he has to pay three thousand per month for child support. ¡°His request is that my sister will give him the evidence against him, including all copies she made. He also made her promise not to retaliate against him after the divorce. ¡± ¡°What did your sister say then?¡± ¡°She agreed, but she only promised that she would not retaliate against him herself. ¡± ¡°She¡®s giving us the chance to do it instead. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡± ¡°I really want Hank to lose his job and end up with nothing. It¡®s best that he bes worthless after marrying Jessica. The saying that poor and lowly couples have everything in the world to lose. Once he has no money, can the adulterers still get along as well as they do now? ¡°Also, his parents and sister are equally incorrigible. Jessica isn¡®t someone as easy to talk down to as my sister. I want to see them fight it out. Hehe, that¡®ll be satisfying. ¡± Serenity was looking forward to her scumbag brother¨Cinw and his family suffering. ¡°I also hope that after my sister¡®s divorce, she can regain her former self¨Cconfidence, restore her former beauty, and then find a new love. I want my second brother¨Cinw to be a wife doting maniac. I want them to live a happy and sweet life and infuriate Hank. I want Hank and his family to regret it for the rest of their lives. ¡± Zachary agreed. ¡°Your wish wille true. She¡®s already beginning to lose weight now. Haven¡®t you noticed?¡± ¡°I did, but it¡®s not obvious yet. ¡± Too many things had happenedtely, so it was normal for Liberty to lose weight. Serenity hoped that after Liberty left Hank, she would thoroughly turn over a new leaf and be anew. The best way to get back at Hank was to live better than himn. ¡°By the way, Hank refused topensate my sister for the money she spent on the renovation. When theyplete their divorce tomorrow, can you help me find a dozen burly men? ¡°I¡®ll take them to help my sister move her stuff and get her renovation money back. Since Hank won¡®t return the money, there¡®s no other choice. We¡®ll just smash the works done in his house. The house was not furnished when he bought it, so we¡®ll return it to him as it was! ¡°Don¡®t even think of keeping the renovations my sister used her money to get! I¡®ll even break down the walls. The doors, windows and many appliances were also bought by my sister. I¡®ll have them all dismantled and moved away. ¡± She would rather sell the furniture as second¨Chand than leave them to Hank. Sure enough, Serenity and Liberty were sisters. Their thought processes were the same. Zachary felt that the two sisters did a good job. They could not let Hank take advantage of them and silently take such a big loss for nothing. He said, ¡°Don¡®t worry about that. There are many young and strong men in mypany. I¡®ll arrange for a bunch of them to bring demolition tools and smash the interior. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Zachary. ¡± Serenity was sincerely grateful to her husband who was like Superman. No matter what difficulties she faced, he would help her deal with them. Without a doubt, someone who could rise up to be a manager in York Corporation was indeed capable. ¡°You¡®re being courteous with me again. We¡®re husband and wife. Your troubles are mine too. Helping you is the same as helping myself. Stop thanking me for every little thing. ¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Okay. ¡± ¡°Then, will your sister rent a house or move in with us after she moves out?¡± Serenity said, ¡°I¡®ll ask what she wants. Even if we¡®re willing to take her in, she also has her pride. She already feels that she owes us too much now. If she lives with us, she¡®ll be under more pressure. ¡± Zachary nodded. ¡°If she wants to rent a room, we¡®ll help her find an apartment which has a better environment and stronger security. It¡®s best if it¡®s close to our home so we can take care of each other. I¡®ll also feel more at ease. ¡± Chapter 524 Chapter 524 Chapter 524 ¡°Liberty is still going through the divorce and hasn¡®tpletely secured her job yet. Let¡®s help her pay for the rent in the meantime. ¡± Zachary was more than willing to simply hand over a house for his sister¨Cinw and her son to live in. Liberty was the person closest to his wife, so he would not mistreat her. However, he could not do that now¡­ Thinking of the sisters¡® characters, even if he gave Liberty a house, she would not ept it. ¡°My sister will get more than one million dors worth of assets from Hank. She won¡®t let us pay the rent for her. ¡± The sisters supported each other, but they would not take it for granted. Both the sisters would not pluck the moon from the sky for each other to go overboard in providing help; they simply respected and supported each other where necessary. Zachary did not say anything. Soon, they arrived at York Corporation. Zachary stopped the car and looked sideways at Serenity. Serenity was looking at him too and grinned. ¡°We¡®re at your office. Shouldn¡®t you be getting off now? What are you looking at me for?¡± Zachary continued to watch her. Serenity thought for a moment, leaned over, and wrapped her arms around his neck. She pulled him closer and kissed him on the lips. He was not satisfied with her feathery kiss and took the initiative to deepen the kiss, He reluctantly stepped out of the car after the kiss. The couple¡®s feelings for each other were growing by the day. Zachary, who had never experienced love before, wanted to transform into a piece of gum and firmly stick to Serenity, never separating from her. Unfortunately, he could not turn into gum. ¡°Don¡®t go back to the store since you¡®ve closed it. Go home and have a good rest. ¡± ¡°I still have to rush my orders, so I¡®ll go to the store to get them done. Besides, the students need to buy stuff when they get out of school in the evening. ¡± Exam season was around the corner, so students had to buy stationery for that and for winter vacation homework too. Nowadays, in addition to the homework assigned by the teachers, students needed to buy another set of workbooks for winter vacation, which her store was stocked up with. If she did not open the store, the students would buy them from other bookstores, and she would miss out on a lot of profit. Zachary was silent ¡°Well then. I¡®ll take care of myself, so you hurry up and get back to work. ¡± He silently got out of the car. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. His heart was stuffy. He was always the one who was reluctant to leave her. It was always her urging him to go, go, go¡­ In the game of love, the first person who falls¨Cfirst is the loser. That saying was true indeed. He waspletely defeated. Thanks to his thick skin, he shamelessly stole her agreement and along with his copy, he burned them to ashes and flushed them down the drain. Otherwise, if she shed the agreement, it would be like pping his face silly. After he got out of the car, Serenity also got out and said, ¡°I¡®ll watch you go in before I go. ¡± Zachary felt much better upon hearing that. She was still concerned about him. Chapter 525 Chapter 525 Chapter 525 Feeling Serenity¡¯s concern for him, Zachary said in a warm voice, ¡°I have a dinner party tonight, so I won¡¯t be home early. You don¡¯t have to wait for me. Go to bed early, but sleep in my room. ¡± His handsome face turned slightly red as he said thest sentence. That was because he remembered how he was the one who told her that his room was off limits and had forbidden her from entering his room. Now, he was the one asking her to enter his room. Serenity smiled. ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll leave the door unlocked for you. Hurry up and go in. Don¡¯t stand here in the cold wind. ¡± Zachary turned around reluctantly and went into the building. Serenity watched his handsome figure walk farther away before driving away. After entering the office building, Zachary saw Josh standing there, looking at him with a sinile. Zachary was speechless. This gossiper!¡¯ He shot a side nce at Josh and walked straight ahead. Josh did not care about how Zachary looked at him and he followed suit. After entering the elevator, he teased, ¡°Zachary, you look like you want to be a piece of gum now so you can stick by your wife¡¯s side 24/7. ¡± Zachary looked askance at him. ¡°A bachelor will never know how sweet and happy I feel now. ¡± Josh was speechless. ¡°Ms. Sox has a cold and isn¡¯t feeling well. Go see her if you have the time. ¡± ¡°I want to, but her moin is with her. We haven¡¯t reached the point of meeting each other¡¯s parents yet, so I won¡¯t go. I¡¯ll go if she¡¯s in the store now, though. ¡± Josh was motivated by his best friend¡¯s happiness and decided to pursue Jasmine. After all, she was the first girl he was interested in. Jasinine¡¯s willingness to go out of her way to do things made him very fond of her. ¡°Zachary, why don¡¯t you help me ask your wife if Ms. Sox has returned to the store?¡± Josh was also a man of action. Once he had a thought, he would act on it. He could not go up to her door to visit her, but he could go to her store. Zachary ignored him Josh nudged him and said, ¡°Hey, you were the one who matched us. Why aren¡¯t you supporting me when I¡¯m trying to take action?¡± Zachary red at him and said grumpily, ¡°My wife just drove away. She must still be on the road now. It¡¯ll distract her if I call her while she¡¯s driving. It¡¯s too dangerous. ¡± Josh opened his mouth but had no way to refute. The elevator brought them to the top floor. When the door opened, Zachary strode out and Josh hurriedly followed him. ¡°Do you have nothing else to do?¡± ¡®He follows me around every day for gossip ¡°I have time to spare for a little break. I¡¯ll go back and ve away for you after you call and help me ask. ¡± Zachary could not help but grinned. ¡°You say that as if I¡¯m a ve driver. ¡± The two entered the office together. Of course, Josh would not wait around and do nothing.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. They talked shop again. ¡°By the way, you asked me to terminate the business with Lowe Enterprise, right? Mr. Lowe himself called me earlier. ¡± Lowe Enterprise reacted quickly. Most importantly, the party that broke off the engagement was York Corporation. In Wiltspoon, those who could cooperate with York Corporation were quite powerfulpanies. It was a win-win deal for both parties. However, York Corporation suddenly cut off the business dealings. Even if it was just their respective subsidiarypanies, Mr. Lowe was still rmed. He did not dare call Zachary directly, so he called Josh instead. Chapter 526 Chapter 526 Chapter 526 ¡°What did you say to him?¡± ¡°What can I say? I can¡¯t tell him bluntly that his sessor is trying to steal your woman from you. This was caused by your personal matters, so you deal with it yourself. I¡¯ll ask Mr. Chaplin to squeeze in a time for you to meet with Mr. Lowe. ¡± Zachary said indifferently, ¡°Save it for after the New Year¡¯s. I¡¯m going on a business trip in two days. ¡± Josh froze, suspecting he liad misheard. ¡°You¡¯re going on a business trip? Where to? Can you bear to leave your wife? Your rtionship happens to be improving now. ¡± Zachary was silent for a long time before saying, ¡°There¡¯s no harm in telling you this. The whole city will know sooner. ¡± There was finally gossip to share. As the representative of all gossipers, Josh¡¯s ears immediately perked up. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. He grinned and asked, ¡°What happened?¡± ¡°The sister who Mrs. Stone has been looking for is most likely my mother-inw. ¡± Josh paused before saying, ¡°You have a mother-inw? I mean, didn¡¯t your mother-inw die a long time ago?¡± ¡°Yeah, my mother-inw died more than ten years ago, but what¡¯s stopping her from having a sister?¡± Josh choked. Everyone in Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss was aware of Audrey¡¯s search for her sister. Clive once came to Julian for help, but Julian felt like there were not many leads. Furthermore, he was in York Corporation working for Zachary, and Clive was Zachary¡¯s rival. Thus, Julian refused Clive¡¯s request. ¡°If your mother-inw is Mrs. Stone¡¯s sister, doesn¡¯t that make your wife Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece? Then, you¡¯ll be Mrs. Stone¡¯s nephew-inw, and Elisa still loves you to death¡­¡± After Josh worked it out, he pped his thigh and burst out intoughter. ¡°Hahahaha! Zachary, I want to see how you clean up this mess. ¡± Zachary extended his hand to grab anything within reach and threw them at Josh. ¡°Get out!¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go out after I¡¯m doneughing. Zachary, juste clean with your wife when you go back tonight. ¡± Josh did not understand why Zachary was still hesitating at this point. The couple¡¯s feelings were warming up anyway and that proved Serenity¡¯s character passed his test. ¡°I¡¯m¡­ afraid. ¡± He was afraid of losing Serenity if he confessed. ¡°Wow, I never thought I¡¯d see the day you¡¯ll be afraid of anything. Serves you right!¡± Zachary red at his best friend with a dark expression. ¡°So, you want to go for a business trip and dy it however long you can? ¡°The truth wille to light sooner orter. If your inother-inw isn¡¯t rted to Mrs. Stone, that¡¯s okay. If they¡¯re really sisters, then are you never going to meet your aunt-inw for the rest of your life? Or do you not have confidence that your wife will stay?¡± Zachary thought of Serenity¡¯s temperament and nodded with difficulty. ¡°I can¡¯t say for sure. ¡± Josh looked at him and smiled. ¡°That¡¯s why I really admire Serenity. I¡¯m a big fan of hers. ¡°It¡¯s your fault for being stubborn. You clearly like her, but you refuse to admit it. If not for your grandmother, you¡¯d still be jealous all day every day and smother yourself. ¡± Zachary paused before he said, ¡°I¡¯m inexperienced in love. ¡± He was at a loss when it came to this emotion. He wanted to be close to Serenity, but he also rejected her. It was a dilemma. ¡°I¡¯ll go on a business trip for a few days. When I return, it¡¯ll be time for Ben Young-Johnson¡¯s wedding. ¡± He would make use of this period while he was away to think hard about the scenarios under which he would confess everything to Serenity. He would think of a way of telling her so she would not get too angry. If he had known that he would end up falling in love with her, he would never have made that decision. However, at that time, they did not know each other, and he even misunderstood her and was guarded against her. Concealing his identity to examine her character was the best way. He had to be grateful that he did not abuse her. Otherwise, he would end up suffering greatly in the end. Josh could also understand why Zachary made that decision in the beginning. Chapter 527 Chapter 527 Chapter 527 If Serenity had known from the beginning that Zachary was the heir of the York family, she would not have married him so suddenly. It could be said that the entire York family, starting from Grandma May, hid the truth from Serenity. Josh spat in his heart, ¡®The whole family are liars. ¡¯ Even if Grandma May wanted a granddaughter-inw, this was not the way. Josh suddenly felt distressed when he remembered that he did not confess his identity to Jasmine. He decided that the next time he saw her, he would tell her that he was actually from the Bucham family; lest he followed in Zachary¡¯s footsteps. ¡°Well, you do you. I¡¯m not you, so I can¡¯t make decisions for you, but your wife¡¯s temper is stubborn. If you don¡¯t handle it well, you two might end up separating. ¡± Zachary¡¯s face went as white as a sheet. He was afraid that Serenity would break it off with him. That was why he wanted to wait until their feelings were deeper and she was reluctant to leave him; only then would it be appropriate for him to confess. In fact, he had tested her before on this, but she did not believe that he was a billionaire. If he confessed now, she might just pack up and leave. ¡°Don¡¯t worry too much. Serenity has feelings for you too, but too many things are happening now, so she hasn¡¯t had time to fall in love with you properly. You should take the initiative and put in more effort. A human¡¯s heart is made of flesh. She¡¯ll be able to forgive you if you move her heart. ¡°Besides, she would be able to understand the decision you made back then. After all, you were strangers at that time. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡± Joshforted Zachary. He had known Zachary for many years, but this was the first time he saw Zachary go pale because he was afraid of losing a woman. Zachary sighed. ¡°I¡¯ll try my best. ¡± ¡°So, do you still want to go on that business trip? If you do, I¡¯ll give you the opportunity to do so. There are some important things that need to be handled by either you or me. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go. Let me think hard about what to do to make Seren less angry. ¡± Josh smiled. ¡°Then I can take a break. You owe me a lot of vacation time. ¡± ¡°Take a break if you want to. Let Callum take up more tasks. ¡± Zachary felt bad too for always using Josh like a ve driver himself. Beep beep Zachary¡¯s phone rang. He took out his phone and saw that it was a message from Serenity. The lines on his face softened. Josh had a sharp eye and instantly guessed that it was a message from Serenity. He jokingly said, ¡°One message from your wife is enough to make a snowy day turn sunny. Zachary, you¡¯re hopeless. ¡± Zachary ignored liim. Serenity sent him a message telling him that she was back in the store. He immediately called her. She picked up quickly. ¡°I¡¯ve sent you a message to tell you that I¡¯m back, so you don¡¯t have to worry. Why did you still call me anyway? Won¡¯t it affect your work?¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. I needed to get some water and wanted to hear your voice. ¡± Serenityughed over the phone and said, ¡°We just saw each other a while ago. ¡± ¡°I want to stick to you like a piece of gum and be with you every day. ¡± Josh was speechless. Should I go out first? Listening to Zachary saying sweet nothings is causing goosebumps all over my skin. Serenity was also shocked by Zachary¡¯s honeyed words and could not help but say, ¡°Zachary, are you all right? Your words are, uh¡­ I¡¯m not very used to it. ¡± Maybe she was used to his serious appearance. She was really not used to hearing him say such mushy words. Zachary paused and said, ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m not used to saying stuff like this either. ¡± He would stop picking up those cringy expressions from other people and simply get along with her just as the person that he was. ¡°Yep. I got goosebumps. ¡± Zacharyined to his grandmother in his heart, ¡®You always nag me for not knowing how to say sweet nothings, but look, Serenity doesn¡¯t like it when I say mushy words. Chapter 528 Chapter 528 Chapter 528 In fact, Zachary felt that actions spoke louder than words. It was easier to prove his love for her with concrete actions than to say sweet nothings with his mouth. of course, if Serenity liked to listen to musly words, then he would learn no matter how cringy it was. Josh stood up and leaned over to remind his friend in a whisper, ¡°Ask about Ms. Sox. ¡± Zachary pushed him away lightly with one hand. After chatting for a while longer with Serenity over the phone, he helped Josh ask, ¡°Seren, will Ms. Sox be back at the store this afternoon? My colleague was thinking of going to see her because she¡¯s not feeling well. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°Jas is noting over. I told her to rest at home ande back when her fever waspletely gone. Does your colleague want to see her? He can call her directly and ask her out. ¡± ¡°Ms. Sox is sick, and the temperature dropped today so it¡¯s even colder. My colleague will me himself if her condition worsens after he asks her out. Send me a message when she goes back to work. I¡¯ll talk to my colleague. ¡± ¡°Sure. Zachary, is there hope for those two?¡± It was Serenity¡¯s first time ying matchmaker and she hoped the result would turn out well. ¡°Ms. Sox hasn¡¯t shared with you whether she has taken a liking to my colleague yet, right? My colleague feels a spark with Ms. Sox and wants to try dating her with marriage in mind. ¡± ¡°I haven¡¯t had the time to ask Jas in the past few days, but I¡¯ll ask her someday. She¡¯s a great girl, so it¡¯s only expected that your colleague likes her. ¡± In Serenity¡¯s eyes, Jasmine was truly great. Zacharyughed. He did not tell his beloved wife that Josh was interested in Jasmine because thetter got famous after lying down at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ll get going now. I need to rush my orders. ¡± ¡°Sure. Don¡¯t overwork yourself. Go home around eight in the evening. Zachary admonished, ¡°Your man has the money to support the family and you. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t need you to support me. I can support myself. However, I won¡¯t refuse if you hand your money to me to save. ¡± After witnessing how her sister¡¯s marriage went from endearing to shattered, Serenity was cautious and insisted on financial independence after marriage. She would not believe nonsense like ¡°I¡¯ll support you¡± thates out of a man¡¯s mouth. It was better to self-reliant than to depend on others. ¡°Let¡¯s leave it at that. I¡¯mn hanging up now. ¡± Serenity was worried the sky would turn dark if they continued chatting any longer. She quickly ended the call. Zachary, who got hung up on by his beloved wife, reluctantly moved his phone away from his ear. He even rubbed the phone with his hand. ¡°You¡¯re in a bind, aren¡¯t you?¡± The man across from him teased him. ¡°You won¡¯t get the chance even if you wanted to. ¡± Josh was silent. ¡°Just you wait. When I manage to catch Ms. Sox, I¡¯ll show off our love and feed you PDA every single day. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not single. I don¡¯t need to envy you. ¡± Josh choked. ¡°Ms. Sox is not back at the store. You can leave now. ¡± Zachary stuffed the phone back into his pants pocket and got ready to work. In the past, he would never waste time on feelings, but now¡­ He was eating his own words. Knock knock. ¡°Come in. ¡± Mr. Chaplin pushed open the door, holding an exquisite bag in his hand. Josh looked curiously as Mr. Chaplin brought the bag closer. He handed the bag to Zachary and said, ¡°Mr. York, Old Mrs. York sent this over and asked me to pass it on to you. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. ¡± Zachary understood at once. Grandma May had said that she would give him a pair of diamond rings from her jewelry vault and present them to him and Serenity. Chapter 529 Chapter 529 Chapter 529 Zachary epted the bag from Mr. Chaplin. Inside contained two red brocade boxes. He took one box out. Josh was not stupid and knew that Grandma May retrieved this from her private treasury to please Serenity. He envied Zachary for having a good grandmother who was worried about his marriage. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Grandma May was the pir of the York family and was respected by everyone. No one would stop her if she arranged for a sudden marriage like the one between Zachary and Serenity. Josh wanted a handful of grandmothers like that. Unfortunately, his grandmother passed away. ¡°I¡®ll go back to work. ¡± Josh did not want to be further provoked by luis best friend again. There were some things that should not be envied. He stood up and left the office with Mr. Chaplin. Zachary looked at the two diamond rings that his nana had sent him and took out his cell phone to call her. ¡°Nana, I¡®ll buy these two rings from you. How can I ept wedding rings as a gift from you?¡± Grandma Mayughed. ¡°Sure. Since you¡®re my grandson, I¡®ll give you a discount. One diamond ring costs one buck, so you can pay me two bucks in total. ¡± ¡°Nana!¡± Zachary shouted in exasperation, ¡°If Seren discovers the price, she would suspect I bought knock¨Coffs from a roadside stall in the night market. ¡± Grandma May was amused and said, ¡°Fine. Look at the rings yourself and give me however much you want. I¡®m fine with anything. ¡± When she were to be promoted to be a great¨Cgrandmother in the future, the money given to her by her grandson would be rewarded to Serenity. The money would then still belong to the young couple. ¡°Thank you, Nana. ¡± ¡°What do you mean by ¡®thank you?¡± ¡°It means whatever you want it to mean. ¡± Grandma May was pleased and lung up the phone happily. When one was in a happy mood, one would be energetic in everything. Time would also fly by quickly. Lunch seemed just a while ago, but it was dinner time in the blink of an eye. Hank deliberately put off all social engagements tonight and drove home alone to talk to his parents about his divorce formalities with Liberty that was taking ce tomorrow afternoon. His parents were just about to have dinner when he got home. ¡°Hank, why are you back?¡± Olivia heard the sound of the car and came out while liolding her te. She ate as she walked, and when she saw her son, she was surprised and asked with concern, ¡°Have you eaten?¡± ¡°I haven¡®t eaten, Mom. Is there enough left for me?¡± Hank got out of the car with the copies of the evidence he got from Liberty and walked toward his mother. ¡°Why are you eating only now?¡± ¡°I don¡®t feel hungry since I have nothing else to do, so I don¡®t want to eat too early. I¡®ll go grab a te for you. ¡± Olivia entered the house with her son, put her te on the table, and went into the kitchen to prepare his portion of dinner. Mr. Brown red at his son. ¡°What are you doing back here? How is Sonny? Have you ever cared about him?¡± ¡°Let¡®s eat first, Dad. I have something to tell you twoter. ¡± Hank was afraid his parents would not be able to eat if he told them about it now. ¡°What¡®s that you¡®ve brought back?¡± Mr. Brown nced at the yellow man envelope. Hank smiled and did not answer. Chapter 530 Chapter 530 Chapter 530 Mr. Brown had a hunch. It must be rted to the divorce with Liberty. Olivia brought the cutlery and served her son food, ¡°You didn¡®t tell me in advance, so I didn¡®t cook for you. This was supposed to be for the dog, but you can have it instead i¡®ll cook some pasta for youter if you¡®re still hungry. ¡± ¡°I¡®ll be full after eating this, Mom. ¡± From the moment he walked in, Hank let his mother serve him food and even set the table for him with cutlery ready. He was used to liis mother doing this. After the family of three finislied their meal, Hank handed the man folder to his father. ¡°What is this? Mr. Browni was suspicious, but he reached out and took the envelope. He opened it and took out a stack of papers and photos from inside. Olivia took a peek too. The husband and wife frowned as they looked at it. ¡°Hank, you kept so much money?¡± Olivia was shocked that her son had so much money. Mr. Brown frowned and asked his son, ¡°Did Liberty give you this?¡± Hanknodded. ¡°What does she want?¡± ¡°She knows all the assets in my possession. She brought this evidence to me when she came to file for divorce. I¡®ll have to share my assets with her equally now. ¡± Mr. Brown¡®s expression was unpleasant. Although he did not know how much money his son actually had, he knew that his son had his guard up against Liberty for a long time. ¡°Everything has to be divided equally with her?¡± Olivia whispered, ¡°Doesn¡®t that mean splitting nearly a million with her?¡± ¡°It¡®s more than a million. ¡± Olivia¡®s heart ached. ¡°If I had known, I¡®d have given her the two hundred thousand dors at first. ¡± Olivia pped her son, ¡°Hank, how could you not have told us about something this big? If ! knew you were hiding so much money, I would¡®ve let you give Liberty that two hundred thousand. Then you wouldn¡®t be losing so much now. ¡± ¡°It¡®s useless, Mom. Liberty won¡®t let me go that easily. Don¡®t forget what she used to do. She¡®s more ruthless than anyone when she wants to be,¡± After Hank¡®s parents saw the evidence that was used to threaten lim, Hank took out the divorce agreement and handed it to his father, ¡°Dad, this is the divorce agreement Liberty drafted. We both already signed it. We¡®ve made an appointment to go to City Hall tomorrow afternoon. ¡°I¡®ve decided to give up custody for Sonny. I¡®ll let Liberty take him away, but it doesn¡®t affect your visitation rights to Sonny. Liberty promised that she won¡®t stop us from seeing him. ¡± Mr. Brown wanted to tear up the divorce agreement after reading it. Hank reacted quickly and snatched it back. ¡°There¡®s no point tearing it, Dad. Liberty and I already made a deal. I came back tonight to tell you that this was what I promised her, so don¡®t go looking for trouble with her later. Let us split amicably. ¡± If not for fear that his parents would go to Liberty and start a fight out of anger, Hank would have gone through with the divorce procedures that afternoon itself. Mr. Brown was just about to p Hank across the face but Olivia held his hand down just as he raised it. ¡°Hank, what did I tell you? Sonny is the Brown family¡®s grandson. I told you to fight for Sonny¡®s custody no matter what, but you actually gave up on it,¡± Mr. Brown pointed at Hank and condemned him. ¡°If Liberty knows you transferred away your assets, then so be it. If she wants you to split your assets with her, then so be it. But Sonny has toe back to us! Olivia said, ¡°Hank, I don¡®t agree with you divorcing Liberty anymore. This divorce is too costly. Don¡®t divorce her anymore. Break it off with that Yates girl and live a good life with Liberty from now on. ¡°Look, you¡®ll have to lose more than a million if you go through with this, and I¡®ll lose my grandson too. It¡®s a lose¨Close for us. You can¡®t divorce her. You¡®re not allowed to divorce her!¡± Hank smiled bitterly. ¡°Mom, Liberty and I have already fallen through to this point. Do you think we can still turn back? If we don¡®t settle for divorce, she¡®ll sue instead. Sonny is only two years old. Children his age are usually granted custody to the mothers. ¡°She kept the evidence of Matthew beating Sonny up and having him sent to the hospital. We won¡®t win if she files awsuit.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. It¡®s better to part ways amicably. At least we can still nod and say hello to each other if our pathis cross in the future. ¡± There was no need to be enemies. Chapter 531 Chapter 531 Chapter 531 ¡°The fight was just kids being kids. Plus, it was an ident. We will take good care of Sonny and keep him from harm¡¯s way when we get custody. ¡± Mrs. Brown heartachingly said, ¡°Hank, don¡¯t go with the divorce. I can¡¯t take it. ¡± It never crossed her mind that fights between children could influence decisions on a child¡¯s custody. Despite Mrs. Brown¡¯s old age, she had never seen anyone take their divorce to court. In the separations that she came across, the women would pack their things and walk out, leaving the house, car, and children to the men. ¡°Sure, it was just a fight between children, but people would see Sonny living with us as whether it¡¯s conducive to his growth and well-being. ¡± Hank patiently persuaded his parents. ¡°Mom, I don¡¯t love Liberty anymore. It¡¯s not like Liberty would take me back either. You can¡¯t make things work just by force. It would be hard for her and me at this rate. Besides, Liberty¡®s willing to settle. The divorce is going to happen. ¡°I¡¯ve made up my mind, and I only came back to let you know. ¡± Jessica was right. It was best if Hank made the decision for the matter between him and Liberty. It was good enough that he let his parents in the loops. With the sobs underway, Mrs. Brown smacked her husband. ¡°Say something, old man! No, I must give Chelsea a call, and get her to talk some sense into you. ¡± She was about to give her daughter a call when her husband stopped her. ¡°Telling Chelsea will only make the matter worse. ¡± Mr. Brown peevishly remarked before asking his son, ¡°Is divorce the only way? Are those pictures that big of a threat to you?¡± He understood his son best. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. His son would notpromise and go with Liberty¡¯s way unless he was under threat. ¡°Dad, my career is done for if Liberty hands over the stuff to my boss. It doesn¡¯t sound like a bad deal if I can end a loveless marriage and safeguard my future. ¡± Mr. Brown fell silent. Mrs. Brownshed out. ¡°Liberty went too far. What will she gain by destroying your future? ¡°She¡¯s trying to get back at me since I didn¡®t go easy on her. I lose out far worse than her because she has nothing to lose. ¡± Mrs. Brown cursed her heart out. She went from criticizing Liberty for going overboard, childing her son for his failure to keep it in his pants, to sting Jessica about being the other woman anding in between her son¡¯s marriage. Now her son and daughter¨Cinw were splitting and dividing the estate. ¡°Mom, it¡®s not Jessica¡¯s fault. I fell for her first. ¡± Hank could not stand her mother speaking ill of Jessica. His feelings for Jessica grew before hers did for him. ¡°Mom, Dad, think about it. I wouldn¡®t be enjoying this sort of ie if I were to work in anotherpany. Although I¡®ll feel the pinch for giving Liberty a million bucks, I can regain the amount and more with my job still intact. ¡°Liberty will petition the court for divorce if I don¡¯t agree to her demands. She¡¯ll get whatever she demands anyway, but I¡®ll lose my job and my reputation in the industry. It¡®ll be hard for me to look for another job. I agreed to Liberty¡¯s terms after careful consideration. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about Sonny. Sonny will still be your grandson after the divorce. Just let Liberty know when you want to see him. She¡¯s fine with visitations. ¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown held their tongues. Her son¡¯s career was more important than anything else. They knew it had not been easy for their son as he had worked his way up from a measly office staff to his current role as a manager. The side ie he earned in a month was the annual ie of many. It took a while before Mr. Brown solemnly said, ¡°There¡®s nothing more we can say since you¡¯ve already made up your mind. ¡± Chapter 532 Chapter 532 Chapter 532 Mrs. Brown grabbed the divorce paperwork for another look, feeling the pain every time she read the line on the payout to Liberty. ¡°I thought the estate was split evenly. The amount doesn¡¯t seem right. ¡± ¡°Liberty¡®s relinquishing her rights to the house and car, so I need to make it up to her marily. Altogether, that¡¯s the total payout. ¡± Mrs. Brown replied after a pause, ¡°What about the renovation cost for the house?¡± Hank answered, ¡°It¡¯s not included. I¡¯ve said it before. I won¡¯tpensate her for that. ¡± Although feeling a little better, Mrs. Brown said, ¡°The renovation was tens of thousands of dors. I guess we benefited a little since she didn¡¯t ask you for the renovation cost. ¡± It did not hurt as bad anymore for the money they were losing. ¡°Hank, how did Liberty collect these photos?¡± Mr. Brown believed his daughter-inw did not have such means. ¡°Did someone help her?¡± ¡°I asked her, but she wouldn¡¯t say, nor did she know who helped her. The person¡¯s pretty good at gathering information. To me, that¡¯s a walking timebomb. Dad, I¡¯m scared, so I gave in to her demands. ¡± Having gotten the whole picture, Mrs. Brown uttered, ¡°Could Serenity and her husband be behind this?¡± ¡°Liberty didn¡¯t show the evidence when something happened to Sonny, so it can only mean that she didn¡¯t have it then. However, she managed to gather the evidence in a short time since she somehow produced the documents a few dayster. Although Liberty has a lot of rtives, none of them are capable of pulling it off. ¡°Don¡¯t worry too much about it, Mom. Everything will be fine so long as we meet Liberty¡¯s requests. She made it clear on the divorce papers that she will not act out in retaliation after the divorce. ¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown fell silent once more. Hank looked at the time and said to his parents, ¡°Mom, Dad, I need to get back. I have work tomorrow. I¡¯ll take leave in the afternoon to go through the paperwork. ¡± His parents were without a word. Hank sat for a bit before getting up to leave. Once he was gone, Mrs. Brown told her husband, ¡°Are we just going to let them go through with the divorce, old man? Can¡¯t they stay together?¡± By not going down the divorce route, the estate would not be split, their grandson would still be theirs, and their son and daughter-inw would still be married. ¡°Hank has decided. What else can we do? Stop the divorce? They¡®ll start the divorce proceedings tomorrow afternoon unless Liberty changes her mind. ¡± After much thought, Mrs. Brown said, ¡°I¡®ll go talk to Liberty and convince her. If that doesn¡®t work, i¡®ll look for Serenity. I have a feeling that Serenity is her sister¡®s pir of support in this. I¡¯ll try and persuade them out of the divorce. ¡°I can¡¯t stand it. It¡¯s so upsetting. It¡¯s so easy for other people to go through a divorce. Why does our son have to take a big hit when it¡¯s his turn?¡± It was over a million bucks, for goodness¡¯ sake. The amount was enough to pay the down payment for a house in a bustling city. Mr. Brown sighed. ¡°What¡¯s the point of regret now? You and Chelsea are to me for Hank¡¯s undoing. ¡± It took Mrs. Brown a while to find her words. ¡°You¡¯re only saying that in hindsight as if you¡®re meless.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. It¡¯s not like I can predict things will end up like this after they get married and have a kid together. ¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were really friendly and embraced Liberty, letting Liberty know that her in ws were good people before the wedding. Liberty knew Hank for a long time, and the Browns had shown their good nature over the years. It never urred to Liberty that her inws would reveal their ugly side after she walked down the aisle. ¡°Do you think people nowadays are like those from our generation?¡± Mrs. Brown was speechless. No. She must try to fix it. Mrs. Brown immediately sent a text message to her daughter, inviting thetter to go into the city together tomorrow. As Chelsea was not in a good mood, she replied to her mother, (Mom, I¡¯m having a tough time at work now, so I can¡¯t take off tomorrow. You should go with Dad. ] Chapter 533 Chapter 533 Chapter 533 ¡°Chelsea said she¡¯s having problems at work. I wonder what happened. I thought she was doing well. What changed?¡± Mrs. Brown mumbled as she swiftly tapped the call button to connect to her daughter. During the call, Chelsea restlessly uttered, ¡°I don¡¯t know what¡¯s going on, Mom. I have a feeling the people at work are out to get me. They have a bone to pick in everything I do. Not one good thing happened the whole day. Just let the divorce go through if Hank wants it, Mom. Your son is a great man. He¡¯ll have no problems finding another wife. ¡± ¡°God knows where Liberty found dirt on your brother, and she got enough to threaten your brother to meet all her demands. Liberty gets over a million bucks in alimony, full custody of Sonny, and three thousand dors a month for child support. ¡± ¡°Does Hank have that much money to give her?¡± Chelsea was shocked. ¡°Hank had transferred his assets out, but Liberty somehow got proof of the transfer. Never mind. Since trouble at the workce is putting you down, you don¡¯t have to go with me. Your dad and I will go into the city first thing tomorrow morning to have a chat with Liberty and her sister. ¡± Chelsea replied, ¡°Go for Serenity, Mom. Convincing her is basically convincing Liberty. ¡± ¡°I think so too. ¡± The mother and daughter chatted for a while over the phone before they disconnected the call. Serenity popped over to Liberty¡¯s ce after work to discuss thetter¡¯s housing following the move out of the Browns¡¯ residence. As expected, Liberty turned down the offer to move into her little sister¡¯s ce. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. She said, ¡°I will have enough money so long as Hank pays up, so I won¡¯t need to move to your ce. I¡¯ll rent a ce and look around for a property. The money should cover the deposit for a slightly smaller house. ¡°With the rest of the money, I¡¯ll see if I can continue working at Lewis & Co. In the event I can¡¯t work there anymore, I¡®ll quit and run a breakfast ce as you¡¯ve suggested. ¡± Serenity stopped the persuasion and instead said to her sister, ¡°Let me know whenever you¡¯re in need. I can lend you the money. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t hesitate to ask you. ¡± Serenity stroked her nephew who was nestled in her sister¡¯s arms. ¡°Ant Swer. ¡± ¡°Does Sonny want a hug?¡± After much thought, Sonny stretched both arins out to let Serenity hold him. Serenity gave him a hug before carefully inspecting the bruise on his face. ¡°The doctor mentioned applying a hotpress every day after twenty-four hours have passed. ¡± ¡°I followed the doctor¡¯s order, and the bruise is looking much better now. ¡± Sonny¡¯s whining had calmed down a lot as Liberty took the time to be with him and pacify the boy. ¡°Take Sonny out for a stroll tomorrow, Liberty. Come to my shop if you don¡¯t have any ce to go to. ¡± ¡°Sure,¡± Liberty answered. Serenity stayed for a friendly chat before leaving her sister¡¯s ce. Mrs. Lane remained at Liberty¡¯s house. Prior to leaving, Serenity had Mrs. Lane help pack Liberty¡¯s things. Once the divorce was finalized, Serenity would bring people over to help her sister move and demolish the house renovation before returning the house to Hank. By the time Serenity returned to Brynfrield, Grandma May was already asleep. She tiptoed into the room and took a shower before creeping into Zachary¡¯s room. Zachary told her to wait for his return in his bedroom. With a phone in hand, Serenity scrolled for videos in bed until she gave in to the sandman¡¯s dust. She dozed off without knowing her phone had fallen onto the bed. Zachary returned home with glee. Serenity promised him that she would be waiting for him in his room. Zachary deliberately left his bedroom door unlocked before he went out this morning to give Serenity ess. He eagerly pushed his bedroom door open the moment he got back The room was brightly lit. Lo and behold, his wife was lying in bed, but she was asleep. Chapter 534 Chapter 534 Chapter 534 Serenity¡¯s phone fell on the bed. Sure, Serenity had waited for Zachary, but sleepiness got the best of her. It was a blow to Zachary¡¯s exhration. He brought along two Eternal diamond rings that he bought from Nana with the intention to put one on Serenity¡¯s finger. Yet, she was far off in dreand. Sitting on the edge of the bed, Zachary reached out to pinch Serenity in the face. ¡°You could sleep through an earthquake, little piggy. ¡± After pinching her cheeks, he leaned down to kiss her face and hovered against her lips for a prod. He then grabbed her phone and put it on the bedside table. Although his wife fell asleep waiting for him, at least she was in his bedroom. That was what a certain Mr. Yorkforted himself with. The next day, Serenity woke up only to be blown away by a huge bouquet of flowers. Behind the flowers was Zachary¡¯s handsome face. She blinked. Serenity sat up the moment she was certain she was awake, and it was Zachary before her eyes. She uttered with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re back. ¡± ¡°Good morning, darling. ¡± Good morning? ¡°Is it morning now? Did you work until morning?¡± ¡°No. I came homest night. Somebody promised to wait for my return, but she dozed off on her own. ¡± Serenity smiled embarrassedly as she reached out to ept the bouquet of beautiful flowers. ¡° Is there a florist that opens this early in the morning?¡± ¡°I can get flowers at any time. ¡± After Serenity took the bouquet, Zachary bent over and locked his dark eyes on her gorgeous face. He asked with a raspy voice, ¡°shouldn¡¯t you give me a morning kiss?¡± Zachary called the butler of the Yorks¡¯ residence to cut the most beautiful blossoms in the garden, wrap them up, and deliver the flowers by car so he could give her the bouquet. Romanced by Zachary¡¯s thoughtfulness and gift early in the morning, Serenity generously gave him a morning kiss. ¡°Seren. ¡± ¡°Whatever it is, you can tell me. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Serenity admired the bouquet. ¡°Where did you get the flowers from? They bloom well and better than the ones on our balcony. ¡± ¡°I made a phone call to order directly from a flower field and got it specially delivered. No florist is open at this hour. ¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes were fixated on Serenity as he waited for her to feel moved and reward him with another kiss. ¡°Is today a special day? You even got the bouquet specially delivered. ¡± Sure, Serenity was moved, but it was not the kind of moving emotions that Zachary imagined it to be. ¡°Why must it be a special day to give you flowers?¡± Zachary pulled out two jewelry boxes and opened them in front of Serenity. Taking the ring for Serenity, Zachary held Serenity¡¯s left hand up and slipped the ring onto her ring finger. While doing so, he said, ¡°We¡¯ve been married for a while now, but you¡®ve been missing a ring. It¡¯s time I make it up to you. ¡°Wear it at all times, especially in front of Shawn. Show off your hand so he can see the wedding ring on your finger. ¡± Although surprised, Serenity did not refuse as Zachary put the wedding ring on her finger. She was amused by his statement though. ¡°Uff, someone¡¯s jealous early in the morning. I can feel it a mile away. ¡± ¡°Anyway, just put it on at all times. Zachary urged before extending his hand. ¡°Seren, put the wedding ring on me too. ¡± Putting down the bouquet, Serenitypliantly took the other ring and slipped it onto the ring finger of his left hand. . Chapter 535 Chapter 535 Chapter 535 ¡°Seren. ¡± Serenity was putting the ring on Zachary¡¯s finger when thetter tenderly uttered, ¡°No matter what happens, we won¡¯t talk about splitting up or a divorce, alright?¡± Thinking the wedding bands were perfect for them, Serenity was in awe of Zachary¡¯s good taste. Zachary was able to pick out a s?itable ring for her in her absence. Serenity heard what he had to say and picked her head up to look at him. ¡°I can¡¯t promise you this. What if you turn out to be like Hank? Am I not supposed to bring up divorce? Cheating men should be dumped as soon as possible. Why should women keep these disgusting men around?¡± Zachary wanted to bait a promise out of her in hopes she would not leave him when he came clean about his identity. To his surprise, she did not fall for it. Despite being caught in a tender moment, her head remained clear. She was deservingly the woman he fell in love with. ¡°Um¡­ In the context that I don¡®t have an affair, you can¡¯t ask me for a divorce no matter what happens. Our marriage is forever. ¡± || Zachary would never cheat. : 17 He was the type of guy who would stay faithful forever once he had fallen for the person. Hence why he was afraid. Zachary was afraid that Serenity would dump him the moment she found out he was the great Mr. York ¡°Did you do me wrong or something?¡± Serenity added, ¡°You¡¯re acting strange today. You had flowers specially delivered to me first thing in the morning, and now you even gave me a wedding ring. Although I can¡¯t appraise jewelry, I can tell that the ring is expensive. ¡°It¡¯s no coincidence. You must have done something to wrong me, so you¡¯re trying to sweet talk me into falling into your trap. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. You¡¯re trying to put me in a situation where I can¡¯t get even with you on the matter. ¡± Zachary quietly stared at her. A whileter, he extended his hand out to shuffle Serenity¡¯s hair and said nonchntly, ¡°You sure have a wild imagination. ¡°I put some effort into romancing you, yet you came up with conspiracy theories. ¡± ¡°Did I guess wrongly?¡± The unchanged expression and confidence on his face made Serenity uncertain. ¡°So you didn¡®t do me wrong?¡± 2achary replied to her with a question, ¡°What could I do wrong? Cheat on you? Impossible. I¡¯m not good with thedies. In fact, I had been single until my nana had to arrange my marriage. Otherwise, I could be single for life. ¡°There¡¯s no way in hell I would have an affair. ¡± He did not carry much desire toward women. As a matter of fact, Zachary was amazed that his feelings for Serenity would develop so soon. Perhaps they were destined for each other. ¡°No man would say they would have an affair early in the marriage. Everybody gets married, thinking it will be their forever. ¡± Zachary choked. ¡°Forget it. It¡®s too soon to talk about this. We¡¯ll revisit this when you¡¯ve done something. I¡®m getting up. ¡± Serenity¡¯s mind was upied by her sister¡¯s separation from Hank today. She got off the bed and walked on, only to make her way back and pushed Zachary down the bed. sping his face, she gave him a big smooch and said with a smile, ¡°I¡¯m really happy to receive a bouquet and the wedding ring first thing in the morning. ¡± Not too long ago, they were still sleeping in separate rooms. He was even torn about giving her a bunch of flowers. Serenity realized that there were certain things that came naturally to men. It did not take long for them to make up for theck of experience with practice. This was the case with Zachary. He got the hang of sweet talk and romancing rather quickly. Letting go of him, Serenity turned on her heel and went to the bathroom. Zachary sat up and touched the area she kissed. Pursing his lips, he muttered, ¡°Didn¡¯t Nana tell her to jump me, strip me naked, and eat me up?¡± She jumped him alright, but she did not strip him naked. If Serenity could read his mind, she probably would retort that she wanted to fatten him up before eating him. Zachary would hope that he was a piece of meat! Serenity came out of the bathroom a whileter. Zachary was still sitting in bed when Serenity drew close. He mentioned in an affectionate voice, ¡°I¡¯m going away on business in two days. ¡± ¡°For how long?¡± Serenity knew that senior executives of majorpanies often had to go away on business. Chapter 536 Chapter 536 Chapter 536 ¡°That¡®s hard to say. I¡¯ll be back once my work there is done. ¡± ¡°Let me know when¡¯s your trip. I¡¯ll help you pack and drive you to the airport. ¡± Since Serenity did not have a change of clothes in his bedroom, she intended to return to her room to get dressed and wash up. With Serenity about to leave, Zachary reached out to pull her back. His dark eyes were fixed on her beautiful face. ¡°That¡®s it?¡± Serenity was without a word. She blinked, unable to get the message he was trying to convey. What else if not that? Was he expecting her to see him off at the city he was conducting business in? ¡°Can family tag along too?¡± Zachary was twitching by the corners of his mouth. ¡°Since I can¡®t go with you, is it not enough that I¡®ll drive you to the airport?¡± Zachary¡¯s hand over hers loosened. Serenity stared at his hand and uttered with a frown, ¡°I thought you had been slick with your words lately, but you lost it now. You just keep me guessing by leaving things hanging. I¡®m not smart enough to read your mind. ¡°I¡®m going to change out of my pajamas. Are we going out for breakfast or having it at home?¡± Serenity asked while walking out. ¡°You can decide. ¡± Detecting the grumpiness in his tone, Serenity stopped at the bedroom door and looked back at him before opening the door and leaving. As Serenity came face-to-face with Grandma May, she wished the old face a good morning like nothing ever happened. ¡°Good morning, Nana. ¡± ¡°Morning. ¡± Grandma May watched happily as Serenity came out of her grandson¡¯s bedroom, Although the couple did nothing, at least they were sleeping in the same bed. This was progress. They ended up having breakfast at home. Serenity made the grandmother and grandson a simple breakfast. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. Thinking it was her sister, Serenity grabbed her phone and looked at the disy screen. It was an unfamiliar number. She grimaced. Any foreign number that showed up on her phone basically belonged to her unscrupulous rtives. Since Elisa stood up for her thest time, these people had called it quits for a while. What were they up to now that they were calling her again? With no desire to take the call, Serenity rejected it. They dialed her number once more. She cut the call. After their third attempt, Serenity mmed her cutlery down. The grandmother and grandson looked at her. She held the phone and took the call, reflecting her attitude through her icy tone. ¡°What do you want now?¡± ¡°Serenity, I¡®m your granddad!¡± Scowling at the harsh question, Old Mr. Hunt wanted to give her a piece of his mind but the thought of his grandchildren¡¯s present predicament held his tongue. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°So?¡± ¡°Can¡®t you be nicer? I¡®m your granddad, your elder! Don¡¯t you have any respect for your elders? I don¡¯t know how your parents raised you. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but my parents passed away when I was young, so they couldn¡¯t raise me like that. What? Are you going to tell on me to my parents? Well, go on. My dad is your son. Show him you¡¯re his father and give him a good dressing-down. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt¡¯splexion turned red with rage. ¡°Are you hurrying me to my grave?¡± His son and daughter-inw had been gone for more than a decade. Serenity was telling him to take the issue to his son and daughter-inw in the afterlife. Chapter 537 Chapter 537 Chapter 537 ¡°I said nothing of that sort. You said it yourself. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt replied, ¡°Where are you? Look at the time, and your shop isn¡¯t open yet. Other businesses would have made a lot of money by now. ¡± ¡°Zachary, my granddad¡¯s so concerned as to what time I¡¯m setting up my shop. Are pigs flying? Can you grab your phone and check from the balcony? You need to take a picture of this phenomenon. ¡± With a scowl, Old Mr. Huntshed out, ¡°Don¡¯t change the subject, Serenity. I¡¯m talking to you. Your uncles, aunts, and I are waiting for you at the shop. Hurry up and get over here to unlock the door! We haven¡¯t even had breakfast. Get us takeouts on your way here. ¡± ¡°There are plenty of breakfast ces around. You can go hungry if you don¡¯t want to eat there. ¡± Why should Serenity be so kind to get them takeaway? They would only tear into her after getting fed. Offended by Serenity¡¯s attitude, Old Mr. Hunt wanted to let Serenity have it when John snatched the phone over. John sounded rather nice over the phone. ¡°Serenity, this is your cousin, John. We¡¯re waiting in front of your shop. It¡¯ll be great if you could get here soon. We need to talk to you about something. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll head over after I have my breakfast. ¡± ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll be waiting for you. ¡± John then hung up the call. ¡°Was that your rtives again?¡± Zachary asked solemnly as Serenity put down the phone. He had been making those people pay in secret, so life must have been hard on them toe back again. Josh was right when he said that these people would be all over Serenity, demanding money from her since they had nothing to lose now. ¡°Yeah. I think all of them are waiting in front of my shop. I don¡¯t know what they want. Anyway, I will never oblige with their request to pay for my grandmom¡¯s medical fees. So what if theye in numbers?¡± Seeing that Grandmom had a lot of devoted children and grandchildren, Serenity, as the unfavored granddaughter, had no obligation to pay for the hospital bill. Her cousins had better lives than Serenity and her sister anyway. ¡°I¡¯ll drive you to the shopter,¡± Zachary offered. Grandma May jumped in, ¡°I¡¯ve never seen your rtives. It¡¯s time we meet. ¡± The Hunts were utterly absurd. Suill, it did not change the fact they were rted to Serenity by blood. They were the York family¡¯s inws by name. As the grandmother and grandson braced themselves and dered they wereing with, Serenity responded with a smile, ¡°It¡¯ll be fine, Nana. All they want is money. I have the money, but I¡¯m not going to give them any. What can they do about it? ¡°I was fine chipping in a little for my father¡¯s sake if they couldn¡¯t afford to foot my grandmom¡¯s medical fees. That was despite the way they treated me and my sister. ¡°But they¡¯re richer than I am. The only thing holding them back from forking out the cash is their greed.N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. They even benefited from my parent¡¯s insurance payout. I wonder if their conscience will evere back to bite them. ¡± Granddad and Grandmom had not aged to the point that they were mobility impaired, nor were they confined to the bed due to any illness. Yet, their children and grandchildren were already expecting Serenity to step up to the te and take responsibility. In the event the old couple was to be bed bound, their corpses would not even be discovered until they were rotten. Every time Grandmom and Granddad were feeling under the weather, it was Serenity¡¯s parents who brought them to the hospital and took care of them back when her parents were still around. Nevertheless, Grandmom often spoke ill about her parents to the townspeople. Grandmom and Granddad should take a good look at how their favored children were treating them now. Chapter 538 Chapter 538 Chapter 538 Serenity smirked in her mind. No deed went past God himself. Karma was bound to strike back The writing was on the wall. Granddad and Grandmom got iting for them. ¡°Regardless of their intentions, we¡¯ll go there with you. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. You can use an extra pair of hands in a fight. ¡± Grandma May insisted on going along. Serenity wanted to say that she could fight, but she could be outnumbered by all her rtives at her shop in a fight. Hence, she did not stop Grandma May from going with her. Liberty mentioned before that Grandma May could kick*ss. With the trio finishing off their breakfast, Serenity tried to clear the table when Grandma May gave her grandson a look. Zachary quietly got up and took the dirty tes from Serenity to carry into the kitchen for a wash. ¡°Seren, don¡¯t spoil him too much. ¡± Grandma May showed Serenity the tricks. ¡°You need to get him to help out with the house chores. This home belongs to you two, and you need to run it together. Sure, it¡¯s taxing for him at work, but you go to work and make money too. Who¡¯s to say you don¡¯t get tired too? ¡°Don¡¯t let him act like a king at home. Order him to work around the house. You can rx a little too. ¡± ¡°Nana, Zachary¡¯s doing good. He does help around the house. ¡± It was her scumbag of a brother-inw who acted like a boss after getting off from work. Hank expected her sister to do everything for him. When told he could do it himself, Hank would unapologetically say that he was tired after being at work all day and all he wanted was to rest at home. He would then go on about her sister having it easy at home since she only had to take care of a child. Yet, Hank was expected to help with the house chores. Hankbeled Libertyzy for that¡­ Serenity refused to waste her time whining about the scumbag as her sister was about to dump him on Jessica Time would only tell if Jessica would spoil Hank and do everything for him. ¡°I¡¯ve urged him, his brothers, and cousins to be self-reliant from a young age, but I was concerned that you might give in to him because you feel bad that he has to work all day long. Seren, I¡¯ll let you in on something. You need to teach a man to be good. Men only bezy because we pamper thein). ¡°You need to take the time to guide Zack if you want a good man. He might not know how to say the right words or express his feelings, but he¡¯ll spoil you crazy when he cares about you. It¡¯s better that he spoils you than the other way around. ¡± Serenity answered with a grin, ¡°You¡¯re Zachary¡¯s grandmother, Nana. He¡¯ll say you¡¯re ying favorites if he hears this. ¡°I¡¯m only imparting this knowledge because I¡¯m his grandmother. I want you two to live happily ever after. ¡± Grandma May boldly admitted her favoritism toward her granddaughter-inw. Serenity was the granddaughter-inw she handpicked after all, so she was certainly going to dote on her chosen granddaughter-inw. ¡°I¡¯m not like those old folks who can¡¯t stand couples getting lovey-dovey. What¡¯s fun about trouble stirring and drama at home? Do they really think their children can do better after divorce? ¡°Many people think their children are the best and can find better spouses after a failed marriage. There¡¯s still a possibility for their divorced children to find someone worse or no one else. ¡°Families with daughters would quietly do a background check on the men¡¯s families before marrying off their daughters. Who would want to marry their daughters into an egotistical family? ¡°The divorced men can be alone for the rest of their lives. By the time they grow remorseful about their actions and go back to their ex-wives, the women would have moved on. Hah. ¡± Grandma May got her head straight. She would not y the devil with the young ones, nor would she allow her children and daughters-in- law to do so. Chapter 539 Chapter 539 Chapter 539 In the kitchen, Zachary heard everyst word of Grandma May¡¯s conversation with Serenity. Zachary was ustomed to his nana¡¯s favoritism toward Serenity. Nana had been hoping for a granddaughter for far too long. s, she weed nine grandsons instead. Nana developed an instant liking for Serenity and saw Serenity as her own granddaughter. However, the olddy changed her mind at the thought that her granddaughter would have to marry somebody one day Hence, Nana did everything in her power to make Serenity her granddaughter-in- law, so Serenity would be with the Yorks forever. Zachary washed the dishes and wiped the stove clean. He then cleaned the wiping cloth and washed his hands beforeing out of the kitchen. Serenity got up to bring out his jacket and tie. Although she had not gotten the hang of putting a tie on him, Zachary was ttered by her initiative. Zachary felt it was worth it if washing the dishes could earn him a little sugar from the Inissus. Grandma May was pleased with Serenity¡¯s gesture, knowing that it was a reward for Zachary. Zachary would be eating out the palm of her hand. It was all about the give-and-take between a couple for the rtionship tost a lifetime. Should only one party be doing the giving and the other doing the taking, the giving party would be disheartened one day. Half an hourter, they arrived at the shop. The shop was set up by Jasmine by then, but she paid no heed to the Hunts. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Apart from Old Mr. Hunt who told Mike to get him a chair from the shop to sit on, the rest were either standing or squatting at the shop entrance. They appeared to be impatient from all the waiting Only God knew how many cigarettes John smoked. After he sent an anonymous letter to Mr. York, John was certain he was going to join York Corporation. s, he heard nothing back. John would not even seek employment in other minorpanies, much less York Corporation. No one would give him a job. Other than his unemployment, the whole family¡¯s jobs and businesses took a huge hit as well. They were losing sales to theirpetitors and going in the red, John knew better than anyone else that it was the doing of the person backing Serenity. He was scared. John persuaded Granddad to swallow his pride and brought the rest of the family to make peace with Serenity once more. Besides, they were also here to talk about Liberty and Hank¡¯s divorce, Mrs. Brown came to the hospital with a sum of money and asked for Old Mr. Hunt. She pleaded with the Hunts to talk Liberty out of the divorce. Money talked. Old Mr. Hunt epted the sum from Liberty¡¯s mother-inw and took on the task. As requested, old Mr. Hunt took his children and grandchildren to seek Serenity beforehand. ¡°Aren¡¯t you embarrassed to keep your elders waiting?¡± Old Mr. Huntid it down to Serenity the moment she got out of the car. Serenity and Zachary helped the abled olddy into the shop while faintly replying, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask you to wait. ¡± ¡°Grandma May. ¡± Getting up, Jasmine immediately pulled a chair for the olddy to sit on. She whispered to her best friend, ¡°Seren, they did note in peace. They¡¯ve been waiting for a long time. I guess they won¡¯t leave until they see the money. ¡¯ Serenity patted Jasmine¡¯s arm tofort her. Chapter 540 Chapter 540 Chapter 540 ¡°Serenity. ¡± Mike and John entered the shop with Granddad. The others were left outside. ¡°Is this your man?¡± Old Mr. Hunt sized Zachary up for a while, forming the opinion that Serenity¡¯s husband was better than Liberty¡¯s husband. Meanwhile, he was upset as well as his granddaughters did not give them financial support when the girls got hitched. The girls were raised, only to ditch their own family for another. His son would turn over in his grave if he knew what his daughters did. Although the girls¡¯ parents were no longer around, their grandparents, Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt were. Serenity and Liberty should have provided their grandparents the financial support. However, Serenity and Liberty did nothing of that sort. ¡°That¡¯s your grandson-inw. What do you think? Isn¡¯t he hot?¡± Approaching Zachary, Serenity ced her hand on his shoulder and deliberately asked Granddad. ¡°Don¡¯t we look good together?¡± Old Mr. Hunt was rendered speechless. He asked the olddy. ¡°And you are?¡± ¡°Your inw. ¡± Ah. The olddy was from Serenity¡¯s husband¡¯s side of the family. Old Mr. Hunt pulled out a waterpipe and some tobo to take a couple of puffs before remarking, ¡°Serenity didn¡¯t inform us about getting married. We have no idea of your existence. Today is the first time we met. ¡°I heard Serenity didn¡¯t have a wedding. I¡¯m wondering how much financial support you¡¯re intending to provide for our Serenity. Have you prepared a marital home, car, and whatnot for her? ¡°Although Serenity¡¯s parents are no longer with us, we, as the grandparents, are still around. We might have had our differences in the past, but it doesn¡¯t change the fact that I¡¯m her grandfather. The means of support you¡¯re giving Serenity shoulde through us first. ¡± Grandma May would have stormed off with a grimace at the mention of money during the first meeting with inws if she were an ordinary wealthydy. Nevertheless, the olddy uttered with a smile, ¡°of course, we would provide the necessary, but it would be for Seren. As to how she intends to use the money, that¡¯s her business. We won¡¯t poke our nose into the matter. ¡± In other words, the Hunts would need Serenity¡¯s permission to ess the money. Following the numerous confrontations, the Hunts had been bested by Serenity. They should think twice before trying to get their hands on Serenity¡¯s money. Old Mr. Hunt was lost for words. ¡°Is your sister filing for divorce, Serenity?¡± Knowing they could not get a penny out of Serenity, Old Mr. Hunt stiffly changed the subject. This was also one of the main reasons they were here today. ¡°Well, news sure travels fast to you, Granddad. ¡± Serenity retorted sarcastically, guessing that the Browns probably had a change of heart and persuaded Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt to talk to them. ¡°Look at Liberty. Who would want a divorcee like her? She also has a child. Why take the divorce route? Her man only strayed a little because of the business engagement he has to conduct for his sessful career. She could turn a blind eye so long as hees home to her. ¡°I know what her man did to her. I¡¯m furious too. See. I brought your uncle and cousins along to stick up for your sister and teach her man a lesson. We can beat him up if necessary. He¡¯ll see the error of his ways and stay true to your sister. ¡°Serenity, your sister listens to everything you say. Take my advice and talk some sense into your sister. Don¡¯t file for divorce. It¡¯s better to save a marriage than to wreck it. You¡¯re Liberty¡¯s sister. You should talk her out of getting a divorce. ¡°Your sister¡¯s man only abused her because she did not have a family standing up for her. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Now that we¡¯re here, we¡¯ve got her back. I can promise that her man won¡¯ty another finger on her. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt peered at Zachary before adding. ¡°Serenity, no matter what we¡¯ve done to you and your sister in the past, we¡¯re still family. You both are married and will be picked on by your inws if you don¡¯t have your family by your side. ¡°Take the high road and be forgiving. Stop giving your cousins a hard time. Let them go back to doing their business and job. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt defended the Browns while pleading on behalf of his children and grandchildren. Chapter 541 Chapter 541 Chapter 541 Pointing at the door, Serenity barked coldly, ¡°There¡¯s the door. Please get up, turn around, and get out of here, Granddad! ¡°My sister¡¯s affairs are none of your business! ¡°My so-called cousins have approached me many times, so they know what I said. It¡¯s not like they were interested in giving me a sincere apology. All they were after was my reconciliation with you. Whose fault do you think it is?¡± Seeing that Serenity would not budge, Old Mr. Hunt peevishly told Zachary, ¡°See that, young man? She doesn¡¯t want her family by her side. You¡¯re free to kick her around. Don¡¯t worry, we won¡¯te for you. ¡± Zachary had a mind to throw the old man out. He had never seen a grandfather like this ever. Despite his disdain for his granddaughter, the old man should not say such a thing Zachary callously remarked, ¡°I married my wife to love and spoil her, not to pick on her. A man who tyrannizes his wife is no man at all. ¡± ¡°Are you going to get out yourself or should I drive you out with a broom?¡± Granddad¡¯s words got under Serenity¡¯s skin These people always talked about making peace Yet, their actions and words reflected no remorse. They still seemed to believe she was at fault and pushed the me for their recent bad luck onto the person backing Serenity. Hence why they shamelessly and relentlessly came by her shop. Serenity had mentioned that the conflict between them started with Twitter, so it should end with Twitter too. Serenity was willing to ept reconciliation if the Hunts issued a public apology on Twitter and returned the sisters their good name. Since the Hunt could notply with a simple request, why should Serenity back down? John immediately chimed in, ¡°Serenity, Granddad¡¯s getting senile. Don¡¯t take his words to heart. We¡¯re here today not for you to pay for Grandmom¡¯s medical bills but to teach your sister¡¯s man a lesson and save your sister¡¯s marriage. ¡°She has a child to think about too. Let us know if your sister¡¯s inws are a menace. We¡¯re your cousins no matter what. We should stick up for you and your sister when you¡¯re being harassed. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t bother, John. She wille and beg us to be on her side when her inws push her around. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt was thinking that since he had already used the money from the Browns to pay his wife¡¯s medical bills and pocketed the rest in the bank, there was no way the Browns could make him cough the money back out. The Browns wanted him to talk to Serenity, and he did. It was Serenity who refused to budge. Thus, there was no need for Old Mr. Hunt to stay and take sh*t from Serenity. Old Mr. Hunt grumpily called his grandsons to leave with him. ¡°Go, go, go. Let¡¯s go home. Don¡¯t give a certain somebody the satisfaction to kick us out. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt walked away in a huff, waving his arm like a boss to get all his children and grandchildren to pull out altogether. Everybody was at a loss. That was a wasted morning. Nothing was resolved. oh, hang on. Old Mr. Hunt got a lump sum from the Browns, so it was not all for naught for him. Since Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s medical debt was already paid with the Browns¡¯ money, the Hunts did not need to hassle Serenity and Liberty for cash. The family was in and out of there in no time. ¡°Serenity, their shamelessness sure blows my mind. ¡± Jasmine gasped before asking the olddy, ¡°Grandma May, you¡¯ve seen a lot of people in your lifetime. Have you met anyone so brazen?¡± ¡°No. ¡± Grandma May was honest with her answer. The people in her circle were particr about honor and mannerisms. She had nevere across brash people like the Hunts. Thankfully, Serenity and her sister were able to stand against these ridiculous rtives, refusing to be taken advantage of. Chapter 542 Chapter 542 Chapter 542 ¡°Why did they stick up for scumbag Hank?¡± Jasmine curiously added, ¡°Did the Browns give something to make their time worthwhile?¡± Serenity smirked. ¡°My sister and Hank restructured the terms of the divorce. In line with the new divorce papers, Hank has to give my sister over a million bucks. I guess Mrs. Brown couldn¡¯t part with the money, so she tried to get my granddad to talk to us. ¡± The Hunts were the sisters¡¯ family by name after all. ¡°I wonder how much Mrs. Brown gave my granddad. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Well, she¡¯ll never see the money again. She¡¯s usually bright when ites to setting my sister up, but not this time. I guess she got flustered. ¡± There were no do-overs in life. ¡°Now that the matter¡¯s over, you should get to work, Zachary. ¡± With the Hunts gone, Serenity urged her man to go to work Although Zachary came with Serenity to the shop, he was not of much help. Serenity packed a hefty punch, so he would usually take a stand back and let her handle it. A certain heir sulkily took off after with his wife urging him on Back at the office, Zachary gave Jim a call. Once Jim epted the call, Zachary went straight to business. ¡°Jim, get everyone to bring along tools to dismantle a house and head to Bright Boulevard in the afternoon. Assist the missus¡¯s sister to move out and demolish the house. ¡± Jim respectfully responded, ¡°Copy that. ¡± ¡°You can stay out of this one. Serenity recognizes you. ¡± Jim replied after a pause, ¡°Sir, although I¡¯m acting as the designated driver, I can be taking on other jobs too. Home demolition is my thing. ¡± It would kill Jim if he could not partake in such a fun activity. After much thought, Zachary said, ¡°You can go along if you cane up with a story that won¡¯t raise any suspicion in Serenity. ¡± Jim answered right away, ¡°Rx, Mr. Zachary. I¡¯m getting the hang of making up excuses. The missus won¡¯t suspect a thing. ¡± Zachary fell silent for a moment before eerilymenting, ¡°Why do I get the feeling you¡¯re implying that I make up a lot of stories?¡± Jim was lost for words. He would never have the guts to imply anything. Zachary was cool about it though. The call soon ended. Meanwhile, Jim sighed in relief after Mr. Zachary hung up the call. Lifting his arm, he wiped away the cold sweat on his forehead. He broke out in cold sweat at Mr. Zachary¡¯s grimment in the middle of winter. It was a good thing he secured the chance to assist in the home demolition for the missus¡¯s sister By the time afternoon rolled around, Liberty dropped her son off at the shop and asked her sister to look after Sonny. ¡°Liberty, do you want me there?¡± Serenity was worried an issue might arise. ¡°Your parents-inw gave Granddad and the others a little something. They came this morning and told me a bunch of stuff about saving the marriage. I told them to get lost. ¡± Passing her sleeping child over to her sister, Liberty uttered softly, ¡°Sonny fell asleep on the way. He has already had lunch, so just let him have his nap. ¡°Hank called me earlier. We¡¯re meeting at the time and ce we agreed on yesterday. It seems he has convinced his parents. ¡± It did not concern Liberty that Hank might have a change of heart. Hank attached importance to his career and was in a hurry to be with Jessica, so he refused to let the matter drag on. He did not want the whole thing hanging over him. Her mother-inw tried to get her rtives to talk her out of a divorce? Liberty wanted tough. Her mother-inw deserved to lose money for being so dumb to trust Liberty¡¯s rtives! Chapter 543 Chapter 543 Chapter 543 Serenity carried her sleeping nephew while asking her sister, ¡°Have you eaten, Liberty?¡± ¡°Not yet. I came right after feeding Sonny. I¡¯m pretty done with all the packing. I¡¯ll need to trouble you to drive over and move my things once the divorce is finalized, Seren. ¡°I found a good ce to rent this morning. It¡¯s not too far from your ce, and the essibility of public transportation is pretty good in the area. The problem is tidying up the ce though. I¡¯ll figure that out once I get the procedures done and out of the way. ¡± The matter at hand right now was getting the divorce finalized. Hopefully, there would be noplications in between. ¡°Have something to eat and rest here, Liberty. I¡¯ll drive you to the bank to meet with Hank. I¡¯ll stay with you until he wires the cash to your ount, and then I¡¯lle back to the shop. ¡± Grandma May jumped in before Liberty could refuse. ¡°Let Serenity go with you, Liberty. We can¡¯t feel at ease if you go alone. That family is shameless. Who knows what tricks they¡¯re going to pull again?¡± The olddy then turned to Serenity. ¡°Seren, drive your sister to the family court once she gets the agreed assets. You need to keep an eye out for the Browns. Some people will resort to violence during a divorce. ¡± ¡°You know kickboxing, so you should go along. You¡¯ll get peace of mind, and so will we. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go with your suggestion, Grandma May. ¡± Serenity wanted to be with her sister all the way, but Liberty would not let her. Now that Grandma May spoke up, Liberty would not refuse out of reverence for the elders andply with Grandma May¡¯s proposal. With that, Serenity put her nephew to rest on a sofa bed. Jasinine and Mrs. Lane went into the kitchen to bring out the cooked food. ¡°Sorry to bother you. ¡± A voice intruded. Interrupted from digging into their meals, the lot turned to the shop entrance and saw the lobby manager of Wiltspoon Hotel. Mr Zen carried a few packed dishes into the shop and ced them on the dining table. He smiled at Serenity and said, ¡°Here I am again, Ms. Hunt. Mr. York called and ordered a few dishes to be delivered to you. ¡± While talking, he pulled out the food container from the bag and opened the lid of each container to disy the food on the table. Serenity expressed her gratitude with a smile, ¡°Thank you foring all this way. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s not trouble at all. ¡± Mr Zen believed it was his honor to run errands for Mr. Zachary Most importantly, he got to show his face around the missus. Anyone well acquainted with Mr. Zachary would know that he was an indifferent man. However, the person close to Mr. Zachary¡¯s heart must be the love of his life. For Serenity to be that person, Mr. Zen had to make himself known in the missus¡¯s presence. It woulde in handy more than sucking up to Mr. Zachary. ¡°Um¡­ I should leave you to your lunch. ¡± Instead of sticking around, Mr. Zen said with a grin before nodding at Grandma May. He then turned on his heel and took off. Serenity courteously walked with him for a while and saw him off. She quickly whipped out her phone to send a thank-you message to Zachary together with a kissing emoji. Zachary was pleased to receive the text message from his wife. During lunch, Serenity uttered, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ve discussed with Zachary and told him to hire a dozen strong men to wait outside your residential building. Once the divorce papers go through, they¡¯ll get right to moving you out and demolishing the renovations. ¡± Liberty answered merrily, ¡°I was stressing about where to hire people to wreck the ce. ¡± At first, Grandma May wanted to volunteer her grandsons to help with the demolishing. However, considering that it was not the weekend today and year-end was around the corner, Grandma May did not want to take her grandsons out of their busy schedules to help out. Since Serenity had talked with Zachary beforehand, Grandma May decided to stay out of it. Jasmine chimed in, ¡°Serenity, did Mr. York hire enough hands on deck? I can call my cousins to join in if you could use more help. ¡°Also, do you want to let Elisa in on this? She¡¯s going to tell you off for not including her in the fun. ¡± If Elisa was here, she wouldmend Jasmine on being a good friend! Jasmine never excluded her in all the fun. Chapter 544 Chapter 544 Chapter 544 Grandma May nearly choked on her food. Why did Jasmine include the fiery Stone girl in this? Grandma May would have to stay out from the fun if Elisa was going along. In addition, Zachary would be assigning his security detail to do the house demolition. As Zachary¡¯s number one fan, Elisa would be able to identify the bodyguards, unlike Serenity. All hell would break loose then. It was a good thing Serenity put Grandma May¡¯s worries at ease when Serenity said, ¡°Let¡¯s not involve Elisa since things might turn rough. She¡¯s an heiress, so she probably hasn¡¯t been in this sort of situation. It might scare her. ¡± If Elisa were here, she would refute that as she had seen it all and had nerves of steel. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. It was a pity her cousin excluded her, blocking her from joining in on the fun. ¡°I think a dozen men should be enough. ¡± Serenity did not want to bother her best friend¡¯s cousins. ¡°We have to make it snappy. We might not be able to remove everything by tonight if we¡¯re too slow. We¡¯re friends, Seren. Don¡¯t mention it. I¡¯ll give my cousin a call now. My cousin does construction. His workers are professionals. ¡± Seeing that Jasmine had a point, Serenity agreed to her best friend¡¯s suggestion. Liberty was touched. She married Mr. Wrong, but she could cut her losses and leave the scumbag¡¯s family. Liberty still had friends and family to lean on. Liberty was fortunate. ¡°Thank you, Jasmine,¡± Liberty gratefully said to Jasmine. Jasmine replied with a grin, ¡°Liberty, we¡¯re basically family. Your business is my business. Seren and I have tolerated that absurd family for far too long. ¡± Serenity did nothing in the past because Liberty wanted to make her marriage work with Hank. Now that they were about to get a divorce, there was no longer a need to hold back. ¡°Let¡¯s eat, everyone Zack had the food specially delivered to us. The food won¡¯t taste good cold. ¡± Grandma May urged everyone to dig in After lunch and a brief rest, Serenity drove her sister to the bank that Hank specified. ¡°Liberty, did you bring all the documents?¡± ¡°I got them. ¡± Liberty did onest check to make sure she had everything she needed. Ring, ring, ring. Liberty¡¯s phone rang She looked at the caller ID and told her sister, ¡°It¡¯s Chelsea. ¡± ¡°Just ignore her. ¡± Serenity had the worst opinion of Chelsea out of everyone. Chelsea was a sh*t stirrer. Although Chelsea had been married for over a decade, she often meddled in her brother¡¯s marital affairs, Chelsea often badmouthed her sister-inw. Now Chelsea got her wish and pushed her brother and sister-inw into getting a divorce. It was anyone¡¯s bad luck to get a sister-inw like Chelsea. It would take a person more preposterous than Chelsea to hold her down. Unable to keep herughter within, Serenity uttered, ¡°Say, Liberty. Do you think Jessica would get along with Hank¡¯s sister after marrying into the family? Can she tolerate his parents helping his sister financially and timewise?¡± Chapter 545 Chapter 545 Chapter 545 Knowing what hit her sister¡¯s funny bone, Liberty replied, ¡°Who cares if they¡¯ll get along? I¡¯ll have nothing to do with Hank after the divorce. ¡± After a pause, Liberty added, ¡°I¡¯m guessing there¡¯ll be a lot of drama. ¡± ¡°Good! Serves them right!¡± Serenity admitted she was a bit wicked to anticipate a hard life upon the Browns after Hank remarried. She hoped Jessica would turn the Browns¡¯ lives upside down and give Chelsea hell. Since Liberty did not ept Chelsea¡¯s call, Chelsea sent a text message instead. Liberty had blocked their numbers on WhatsApp, only sparing Hank¡¯s number to discuss the separation matters. Once the divorce papers were finalized, Hank¡¯s WhatsApp contact details would be at permanent fixture in Liberty¡¯s lists of blocked numbers. Liberty deleted Chelsea¡¯s text message without even reading it. She then blocked Chelsea¡¯s phone number, refusing to ept any more calls and text messages from this sender. It would not take long before Chelsea was no longer her sister-inw. Serenity¡¯s phone rang too. She thought it might be the Browns trying their hand on her as Liberty did not pick up their calls. Serenity looked at the mobile screen and realized that it was her man. She put his call on loudspeaker. ¡°Honey. ¡± Serenity was rendered speechless. Zachary seemed to call her honey this morning when she woke up too. However, her attention at the time was on the flowers, so she gave no response. Serenity was wide awake this time. With Zachary calling her ¡°honey¡± again, Serenity swiftly nced at her sister. Serenity was relieved that her sister did not react to it whatsoever. It was probably because other couples called each other endearing pet names as well. ¡°Serenity?¡± Zachary was not used to giving Serenity a term of endearment too. Nevertheless, it did get easier after the first time. Getting no response from his wife, Zachary assumed Serenity did not like the mushiness form of address, so he switched to addressing her by her name. ¡°Are you listening?¡± ¡°I¡¯m driving. Just tell me. I¡¯m listening. ¡± ¡°I found more than a dozen people for you. I told them to wait at the entrance of Bright Boulevard. You can just head thereter. ¡± ¡°Sure. I got it. Jasmine also called her cousin to bring workmen to help out. Her cousin works in construction. His workmen are professionals in this. ¡± They could build and demolish homes. Zachary remained quiet for a while, dwelling on the fact that Jasmine stole his credit. ¡°I can arrange for more people to do the job if necessary. ¡± Apart from his usual security detail, Zachary made a call to the family residence to summon the other bodyguards too. There were eighteen musclemen altogether. ¡°We have enough for now. It¡¯s a matter of speed. We don¡¯t want Hank to find out and make a fuss. ¡± Serenity could imagine the shock Hank would receive when he returned home at night to a wrecked home. Hahaha! The thought of Hank¡¯s mouth agape gave Serenity the thrill. It was his fault for bullying her sister. Did Hank think he could get off scot-free after refusing to pay back the renovation costs? Hank was so arrogant to challenge Liberty to tear off the floor tiles. Well, they were taking him up on the challenge now. The sisters refused to let Hank look down on them. ¡°That¡¯s true. Let me know if you need anything. I can get you set up. ¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re good for now. Focus on your work. You cane over and help if you don¡¯t have any social engagement tonight. My sister rented a ce. We need to help her tidy up the ce. ¡± The great Mr. York was ordered around like a cleaner.N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Chapter 546 Chapter 546 Chapter 546 Although the man had been educated on how to take care of himself, he had never been al cleaner before. When his wife was a ve driver to him, he did not get angry and was willing to do so instead. ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll head over after work. Send me the address of Liberty¡¯s rented apartmentter. Remember to cook for me too. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Zachary,¡± Liberty thanked her brother-inw. If it were not for her sister and brother-inw standing behind her all the time and supporting her, she would not have been able to reach a consensus with Hank and divorce. peacefully in the shortest time possible. ¡°We¡¯re family, Liberty. You don¡¯t have to thank me. ¡± Liberty was still grateful. After hanging up the phone, she said again, ¡°Seren, Zachary is a very good man. You have to treat him well. ¡± ¡°Sis, my ears are going to fall off if you say that one more time. ¡± She said the same thing every time. ¡± Libertyughed. It had be a habit. Ten minutes,ter, they arrived at the bank Hank mentioned. Hank and his parents were present. Chelsea was not around, maybe because she was unable to take time off. When they saw Liberty arrive, Olivia weed her with smiles like she was a new daughter-in w. She affectionately took Liberty¡¯s hand and said, ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s call off the divorce, okay? ¡°Chelsea and I were wrong in the past and always told you off. I promise you that from now on, you¡¯re the queen of our family. If Hank dares treat you badly again, I¡¯ll break his legs for you! ¡°Liberty, fate brought you two together as a couple, so you should cherish the rtionship. Hank and you have known each other for twelve years. You¡¯re also well aware of how well he treated you in the past. You have to reconsider. ¡°Hank was tricked by that vixen Yates, I already ordered him to break up with her, so don¡¯t be angry anymore. Tell me how you want to vent your anger and I¡¯ll help you do it. Don¡¯t be mad, okay? For Sonny¡¯s sake, just forgive Hank this one time. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°Don¡¯t go through the divorce, all right? Don¡¯t divorce anymore. ¡± Liberty calmly looked at the woman who was about to be her ex-mother-inw. She said calmly, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mrs. Brown, but there¡¯s no turning back now. Ever since your son did those things, it was destined for us to end. ¡± ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Olivia¡¯s eyes reddened when she heard Liberty call her Mrs. Brown. ¡°Liberty, are you really that heartless to let Sonny live in a single parent family?¡± ¡°Sonny is my son. He¡¯s more important to me than life itself. Even if he lives with me in a single parent family, I can care for him and let him grow up healthily. Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t tarnish your image in front of Sonny. ¡± No matter how Hank and her fell out, he was still Sonny¡¯s father. Liberty would not speak ill of Hank in front of their son. There was no need to implicate the children in their conflict. ¡°Serenity, persuade your sister. Don¡¯t let her divorce. ¡± The price of the divorce was too great. Olivia regretted it deeply now. She always thought that since Liberty had no job and no ie, became fat and ugly after marriage, and had Sonny, she would not have it in her to divorce. She did not expect Liberty to actually get a divorce! ¡°Mrs. Brown, I respect my sister¡¯s choice. ¡± What was the point of regretting it now? Serenity saw the regret on Olivia¡¯s face, but she felt that the regret was not because her sister. insisted on the divorce. It was because her sister would be getting more than a million dors from the division of the assets, and Olivia could not bear to part with the money. Chapter 547 Chapter 547 Chapter 547 Serenity wondered how many tens of thousands Olivia gave Old Mr. Hunt to lobby for her. Her granddad probably would not agree unless it was at least thirty to fifty thousand. The family deserved it. Serenity was wickedly looking forward to Olivia going to her granddad to ask for the money back. The two families would tear each other up. Oh, her character was getting worse. Would Zachary dislike her like this? If Zachary were here, he would say, ¡°I won¡¯t dislike you. I love it when you¡¯re like this!¡± ¡°Mom. ¡± Hank quickly walked over, pulled his mother away, and turned to his father to say, ¡°Dad, look. after Mom. ¡± Olivia flung off his hand, but the next moment, she grabbed his arm and pinched him while scolding him, ¡°It¡¯s all your fault. You tore a good family apart. ¡± She then sat on the floor and pounded the ground, crying and screaming at her son. Hank was embarrassed by his mother¡¯s behavior. He gave an unpleasant expression, ashen and pale. Mr. Brown came over and pulled his wife up. His expression was also unsightly as he persuaded his wife, ¡°Stop this, honey. There¡¯s no turning back anymore. ¡± He also said guiltily to Liberty, who was calmly watching the scene, ¡°We¡¯re sorry, Liberty. You¡­ You two can go in and proceed with the formalities. ¡± Liberty did not say anything. No matter what they said now, she would not take it to heart. All she knew was that her marriage with Hank was going to end. She was going to get a new life. ¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± Liberty said indifferently and took the lead to enter the bank. Hank said a few words to his father and followed suit. He asked Liberty as he walked, ¡°Have you brought the originals of the evidence as well as all the copies?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m a woman of my word. As long as you finish everything swiftly, I won¡¯t drag it out either. ¡± Hank was slightly relieved. The two of them went into the bank and were soon followed by Mr. and Mrs. Brown. The money was Hank¡¯s, but the bank card was under Mr. Brown¡¯s name, so thetter had to sign the documents. Olivia kept hinting at her husband not to sign but to dy it for as long as possible. He ignored her. As he mentioned, there was no turning back anymore. If they continued to argue, their son¡¯s future might be ruined as well. After Mr. Brown signed the papers, 1. 18 million was deposited into Liberty¡¯s bank card as per the divorce agreement. Hank¡¯s parents seemed to have aged twenty years when they emerged from the bank. Hank took out his cell phone and said to Liberty, ¡°It¡¯s almost New Year¡¯s, so this month¡¯s child support payment doesn¡¯t count. I¡¯ll transfer to you next year¡¯s worth of child support now. After that, I¡¯ll transfer the yearly amount on every New Year¡¯s Day. ¡± As he spoke, he took out his phone and transferred thirty six thousand to Liberty. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Liberty did not expect him to give her a year¡¯s worth of child support so easily. However, this was better. She would not have to worry about him regretting it and refusing to pay child support after the divorce. There were many men who promised child support during the divorce, but went back on their word and denied it, refusing to give any money. Those would not pay for child support but would morally ckmail their children when they got old, and they would tell the media they had to beg their children to support them in their old age. People like that were a dime a dozen. Hank let Liberty down. Since he was willing to pay for child support, he was at least much better than those who would rather use their money to raise the children of their next wife rather than the child they shared. Chapter 548 Chapter 548 Chapter 548 ¡°If you want to see Sonny in the future, call me and I¡¯ll send him to your parents¡¯ house, but you have to send him back on time. ¡± This was what Liberty had promised Jessica. She would not use her child to destroy Jessica and Hank¡¯s rtionship. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. She would try not to meet Hank after the divorce. ¡°Okay. ¡± Hank had no problems with that. ¡°We¡¯ll go to City Hall toplete the formalities now. I requested leave, but I have to go back. to work after the procedure. ¡± Hank was also at peace with himself at the moment. Liberty returned to her sister¡¯s car and they went to the City Hall together. Hank, on the other hand, drove with his parents and followed Serenity¡¯s car. Olivia even cried for a while in the car. After being told off by her husband and knowing there was no turning back, she wiped her tears away and said to her son, ¡°After the divorce is finalized, tell Liberty to go back and pack her stuff and move out. Don¡¯t let her stay for even one more night. up ¡°Your father and I will go home first to pack up our stuff and we¡¯ll move over to live with you. We¡¯ll stay in the city for New Year¡¯s. ¡°When your sister and brother-inw get their leaves approved, tell them to bring their family over too. We¡¯ll all get together for New Year¡¯s. Also, tell that Yates girl to spend New Year¡¯s with us. We need someone to cook for us. Hank knew his parents were heartbroken that he was determined to divorce and give up on Sonny¡¯s custody, so he agreed to whatever was asked of him. As for letting Jessica stay and spend New Year¡¯s with them, as well as cooking for their family, Hank surprisingly did not find anything wrong with that. In previous years, it was always Liberty who cooked for the family during New Year¡¯s. On the way to City Hall, Hank received a phone call from Jessica. She asked, ¡°Hank, are the formalities done?¡± ¡°We¡¯re on our way to City Hall now and will reach in about ten minutes. We just divided our assets as per her request. ¡± Jessica sighed in relief. Fortunately, there were no more idents. ¡°Text me when you¡¯re done. ¡± ¡°Okay. Jessica, I¡¯ll help you move your stuff in the evening,¡± Hank said happily. He nned to go over and pick Jessica up after Liberty moved out. He wanted to live blissfully with just the two of them before his parents and sister¡¯s family came over to stay. Jessica smiled sweetly. ¡°Okay. ¡± Hank¡¯s house was well-decorated, and that house was in a good school¡¯s catchment area. The price of property there had risen so much that the house was worth several million. Jessica had long been looking forward to living in a high-end neighborhood and bing the mistress of that house. Now that her dream was soon to be realized, she was feeling cheery too. She wanted nothing more than for the day to end. When the night sky came, she would be able to be with Hank proudly and openly. ¡°I¡¯m driving now. Let¡¯s talk tonight. ¡± Hank was looking forward to the days ahead too. After he hung up the phone, Mr. Brown asked his son in a low voice, ¡°Are you going to marry that Yates girl?¡± ¡°Dad, I love Jessica. I¡¯m divorcing Liberty because I don¡¯t want Jessica to suffer. Once I¡¯m single again, I¡¯ll definitely marry Jessica. You and Mom can pick a date to meet with her parents and siblings. We¡¯ll have a meal together. ¡± He was talking about Jessica and his wedding matters. Olivia said, ¡°You two can just get your marriage license at City Hall. There¡¯s no need to do anything else. ¡± ¡°That won¡¯t do. I promised Jessica I would marry her mboyantly. A girl only wears a wedding dress once in her life. I can¡¯t let Jessica down. ¡± Chapter 549 Chapter 549 Chapter 549 Olivia said, ¡°You¡¯ve already given so much money to Liberty after divorcing her, but she did give birth to a son for you, so I¡¯ll let it go even though I¡¯m heartbroken. However, now you¡¯re saying you want to hold another wedding, and you want to make it extravagant? That¡¯ll cost a lot of money. Son, do you think you run a bank?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mom. I¡¯ll pay for my wedding with Jessica. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. I don¡¯t need you and Dad to pay for it. ¡± Even if they did not have to fork out any money, Olivia still felt reluctant. When she thought of how she foolishly went to the Hunt family and gave them tens of thousands to ask them to persuade Liberty not to get a divorce, she wanted to find a brick to p herself. How could she have done something so stupid? When her son was done with the divorce, she was going back to that old man to ask for her money back. Old Mr. Hunt requested tens of thousands and promised to persuade Serenity to talk Liberty out of the divorce, but he failed to do so, so he naturally had to return the money to her. They arrived at City Hall ten minutester. Serenity and Liberty arrived first and waited for Hank¡¯s family at the entrance. When Hank arrived, the couple showed no hesitation and entered the building. Three years ago, they walked into City Hall hand¨Cin¨Chand and received a marriage license. At that time, Liberty thought she would grow old together with Hank. She never thought they would be back after just a few years, and this time, it was for their divorce. The pair were divorcing on consensus with no quarrels and brought all the documents needed. The officers at City Hall had to deal with many divorce cases daily, so when it was the couple¡¯s turn, the officers did not try to persuade them and simply proceeded with the formalities. Hank¡¯s parents and Serenity waited at the side. What surprised the three of them was there were very few couples who came to register for marriage, but there was a long line waiting to process their divorce papers. Serenity nced at Hank¡¯s parents and thought, ¡°The divorce rate is so high not only because of the couple, but also due to the couple¡¯s families. ¡® Her sister ended up like this because of the Brown family. ¡°Seren. ¡± Liberty got the divorce certificate and walked over in relief, calling out to her sister. ¡°It¡¯s done. Let¡¯s go back. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity got up and apanied her sister out. ¡°Liberty,¡± Hank called out to Liberty at the entrance. Liberty stopped and looked back at him. He held his right hand. ¡°I wish you happiness in the future!¡± Liberty epted the handshake and said graciously, ¡°I wish Ms. Yates and you happiness in the future. ¡± Hank pursed his lips. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I hurt you deeply. ¡± When all was said and done, he was in the wrong. He indeed let Liberty down. Liberty smiled and said nothing. Since he was willing to divorce and let her leave, her resentment toward him lessened significantly. ¡°Liberty, since you¡¯ve divorced Hank, it¡¯s not right for you to live in Hank¡¯s house anymore. Please move out tonight. We¡¯ll be moving in tomorrow. ¡± Since the divorce was finalized, Olivia stopped pretending and bluntly reminded Liberty to move out. Liberty said casually, ¡°I packed Sonny and my luggagest night. I¡¯ll go over now and take them away. Also, I¡¯ll take the fees I used for the renovation. ¡± Olivia said coldly, ¡°You¡¯re wee to try. Who cares?¡± Little did she know, it was not just some household appliances Liberty wanted to take away. Chapter 550 Chapter 550 Chapter 550 ¡°Not all of the appliances were bought by you, so don¡¯t move everything. ¡± Olivia was afraid Liberty would move the appliances they bought as well. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mrs. Brown. I won¡¯t touch things I didn¡¯t pay for. You cane to me if you find anything of yours missing. ¡± Olivia snorted coldly and stopped speaking. Ring ring ring¡­ Hank¡¯s phone rang. It was from his boss. He quickly answered the phone when he saw the caller ID. The boss said something over the phone, and Hank¡¯s expression sank. He said in a subdued voice, ¡°I¡¯ve finished my business, sir. I¡¯ll go back to the office now to deal with it. Why were all the orders canceled? Don¡¯t worry, sir. I¡¯ll definitely deal with it and salvage those orders. ¡± After hanging up the phone, he said to his parents, ¡°Mom, Dad, something urgent cropped up in the office. I¡¯m going back to work now. You two take a cab back. ¡± He turned to Liberty and said, ¡°Liberty, just move out before ten tonight. I¡¯ll only be home at that time. ¡± He left in a hurry. He did not even have time to tell Liberty to take care. Hank¡¯s parents watched their son¡¯s back as he quickly left. Mr. Brown nced at the Hunt sisters but did not say anything, and took his wife to hail a taxi to go home. Serenity, on the other hand, drove her sister back to move her stuff. ¡°Sis, it looks like Hank¡¯s job hasn¡¯t been going too welltely. ¡± Serenity noticed her ex¨Cbrother¨Cinw¡¯s dismay when he received a call from his boss. ¡°Maybe he only rose to his position thanks to the good fortune you brought to him. Now that you¡¯re divorced and no longer his Lady Luck, his career will go downhill. ¡± Serenity hoped for that to happen. It was true that some men could make a fortune because their wives were good homemakers. They were able to focus on their career without worries. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Hence the saying, ¡°behind every great man there¡¯s a great woman¡°. Liberty said indifferently, ¡°I don¡¯t care how his work goes. In any case, I got my money. ¡°Seren, when I settle down, tell Zachary to ask that friend of his out. We¡¯ll buy him dinner for the great help that he¡¯s provided. If not for him helping to collect the evidence for me to threaten Hank, I wouldn¡¯t have been able to divorce Hank and obtain the assets in the shortest time possible. ¡® Serenity was likewise curious about this amazing friend of Zachary and responded, ¡°Sure. I already told him to invite his friend out for dinner and he said he had already done so. ¡± If Josh were here, he would say, ¡°I¡¯ve been waiting for your dinner invitation too, but my boss. won¡¯t let me show up. ¡± After about half an hour, the two sisters returned to Bright Boulevard. Before they reached the entrance, Serenity saw a group of people holding home demolition tools. They either stood or squatted by the entrance of themunity, standing by with themunity¡¯s security guards. She knew at once that these were the helpers arranged by Zachary. Jasmine and Grandma May were there as well. Jasmine tried to persuade the old woman to stay in the store and take care of Sonny. Grandma May looked askance at Jasmine and said, ¡°Jasmine, are you looking down on me? I¡¯m old physically, but I¡¯m still young at heart. I might not be able to tear down the house, but I can be themander¨Cin¨Cchief. With me at the helm, I guarantee the demolition will go smoothly. ¡± Jasmine was amused by the olddy andughed. ¡°Grandma May, you¡¯re the funniest old woman I¡¯ve ever met. ¡± She could not convince the olddy to stay back, so she ended up bringing her along. Mrs. Lane stayed in the shop to look after Sonny. They could have closed the shop ande over together. However, Sonny was frightened just a few days ago, so they decided not to let him see something as violent as tearing down a home, lest it leave another trauma on his young mind. Chapter 551 Chapter 551 Chapter 551 Serenity stopped the car. ¡°Seren, did everything go well?¡± Jasmine asked with concern. Serenity smiled. ¡°It went great. ¡± Liberty got out of the car. She took out her ess card and while swiping it, she said to the security guard, ¡°I¡¯m moving out. These are the movers I hired to help me. ¡® The guard took a double take at the group of people and said, ¡°Are you moving or tearing down your home? They even brought so many tools with them. Are they redecorating after the move as well?¡± ¡°Yes, they¡¯re here to redecorate. ¡± However, it would not be her money to be spent anymore. The security guard did not ask more and it was fine to him as long as they were not here to pick a fight. With Liberty leading the way, the group of people entered Bright Boulevard. . Along the way, many residents were attracted by the procession and stopped to watch. ¡°Liberty, why did you bring so many people over?¡± Some people who knew Liberty took the opportunity to ask her when they greeted her. Liberty smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯m moving and then redecorating the ce, so I have to tear it down first. ¡± ¡°Why are you suddenly redecorating?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t like the current style anymore, so I¡¯ll smash it and rece it with something new. your The person hummed and praised, ¡°You¡¯re able to spend money so easily because husband is good at making money. ¡± Typically, a home modification would not be done after a renovation had already taken ce. Liberty smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯ll get to work now. ¡± Hank was indeed good at making money, but that had nothing to do with her anymore. Serenity and Jasmine apanied Grandma May and walked at the back of the line. Looking at her sister who was leading the way, Serenity said to her best friend, ¡°I feel like I got my sister back after the divorce. That¡¯s my energetic and fiery sister. ¡± Jasmine nodded. Marrying the wrong man could really ruin a woman. ¡°Seren, what are your sister¡¯s ns for the future?¡± Grandma May said with concern, ¡°Tell me if she wants to get married again. I¡¯ll help her pick a good man myself. I¡¯ll make sure her second love blooms more brilliantly than her first ever could. ¡± Serenity thanked the old woman and said, ¡°My sister most likely won¡¯t consider remarrying for the time being. She might start her own business. ¡± Marriage brought harm to her sister and certainly, remarriage was not a n for the foreseeable future. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Grandma May hummed. ¡°That¡¯s good too. Womenfolk have to strive for self¨Cimprovement. ¡± All of them arrived at Liberty¡¯s house. Liberty said, ¡°This morning, I put a sticky note on everything that was bought with my money. Help me move away the items that can be moved. If they can¡¯t be moved, then smash it. Things without a note on them were bought with their money, so we won¡¯t touch those belonging to them. ¡°Besides, I paid for all the renovation. The doors, windows, and lights can all be taken down. If they can¡¯t be taken down, then smash them. ¡± She would take away whatever could be used or otherwise had them taken down. If those items which were taken down could no longer be of use or dismantled, then they would smash them. ¡°I¡¯ll leave it to you. ¡± Liberty went to get a small knife and cut open the sealing tape of a few boxes of water. Then, she took out bottles of mineral water to distribute to everyone. She had prepared everything in advance. The men looked around the house and saw that most of the appliances had a post¨Cit note stuck on them, so Jim and the other bodyguards first moved out the appliances that Liberty. bought. The workers arranged by Jasmine¡¯s cousin started removing some of the appliances installed on the walls. Grandma May reminded everyone, ¡°Be careful. ¡± Serenity and Jasmine, on the other hand, helped Liberty pack up loose objects that needed to be taken away so it would be more convenient for the bodyguards to move themter. Serenity had no idea that these people were the bodyguards of the York family. She only thought Zachary was amazing to find so many strong and young workers. Without a doubt, they could easily do the heavy lifting and moving. Jim was amongst the group and kept a low profile, but the sharp¨Ceyed Serenity soon caught. sight of him. Chapter 552 Chapter 552 Chapter 552 ¡°Wait, aren¡¯t you the substitute driver?¡± Serenity was surprised when she recognized Jim. Jim smiled sheepishly. ¡°I gave your husband my name card and told him he could find me if he needs anything. I can do anything as long as I¡¯m paid. ¡± Serenity supposed that there was not a smooth stream of business for a substitute driver and that doing other jobs part¨Ctime was better than staying idle at home, so she did not suspect that Jim was lying. ¡°Thank you. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t thank me. I¡¯m getting paid to do my job. ¡± Jim finished speaking and hurriedly carried the sofa out with a colleague. Jasmine asked casually, ¡°Do you know that person?¡± ¡°Yeah, I¡¯ve seen him a few times since he lives in Brynfield. He usually works as a substitute driver. He sent Zachary home twice when thetter got drunk. ¡°I didn¡¯t know that he had side jobs. I¡¯ll ask for his name cardter. We can hire him if we need something done in the future. I think he¡¯s quite reliable. ¡± Grandma May, who was helping to pack up Sonny¡¯s toys, expressed silently, ¡®Jim is one of Zack¡¯s bodyguards. Of course, he¡¯s reliable. ¡® Many hands make light work. With everyone¡¯s help, all the appliances Liberty had stuck a note on were soon moved away along with Liberty and Sonny¡¯s luggage. Ring ring ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. ¡°Zachary, we¡¯re moving Liberty¡¯s stuff now. ¡± Serenity knew that her husband was equally concerned despite not being able to be there to help, so she reported the progress to him as soon as she answered the phone. Zachary said warmly, ¡°I hired a few trucks to go over. They should be reaching the entrance of the residential area soon. I gave your phone number to one of the truck drivers. Bring them inter to help move your sister¡¯s stuff to her apartment. ¡°If it doesn¡¯t fit in her apartment, you can temporarily move the stuff to our house. ¡± Their small home was big enough since they did not have many belongings. ¡°Okay, got it. You¡¯re really thorough, Zachary. We called a group of people to help with moving, but we didn¡¯t think of hiring a few trucks to transport the stuff. ¡± All of the appliances that were moved out were ced in the open space downstairs for people to gawk at. Zachary¡¯s lips curled up upon receivingpliments from his wife. ¡°You guys carry on. I¡¯ll go . over after work. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Serenity took advantage of everyone¡¯s inattention and smooched into the air, then said softly, ¡°I¡¯ll give you a flying kiss. ¡± Zachary, who was still on the line, heard it and said with a low chuckle, ¡°I want a real kiss when I go home tonight. ¡± Serenity smiled cheekily and quickly hung up. - Zachary put down the phone in a happy mood. Josh and Callum happened to knock on the door and enter. When they saw the smile that was still on his face, Josh clicked his tongue and said, ¡°You secretly called your wife again, didn¡¯t you? Look at that smile stered on your face. ¡± Zachary acted as if nothing happened. ¡°My sister¨Cinw just divorced. They brought men to her house to help with the move and tear down everything else. It¡¯s very lively there now. I just called to ask about the progress. ¡± Josh was speechless. Zachary was deliberately exining it to him. He knew Josh liked to gossip and purposely told him about it but forbade him from joining in on the fun. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re bing more hical by the day. ¡± Zachary asked innocently, ¡°What do you mean?¡± Josh was speechless. Callumughed. ¡°Josh wants to help your sister¨Cinw tear down her house. ¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t say that. ¡± Josh immediately denied it. Zachary hummed. ¡°I was thinking that if you really wanted to go and join the fun, I would let you go under the pretense of a truck driver to help move her stuff. ¡± Josh was struck speechless again. What a terrible friend! What an insufferable friend! He must have owed Zachary in his past life! Chapter 553 Chapter 553 Chapter 553 After moving out those things that were moveable, what remained were the few items Hank bought with his own money. Everyone worked together and brought the appliances Hank purchased over to the entrance of the house before they began smashing the floor tiles and tearing down the drywall. The sounds of drilling, shattering, and breaking mixed into creating a cacophony. It affected the residents upstairs and downstairs. Liberty and Serenity felt embarrassed and hurriedly went to a store to buy some fruit to give. to their immediate neighbors. They apologized and assured them that the job would be finished before dark. Since the sisters came bearing fruit to apologize and the neighbors were familiar with the sisters, they temporarily put up with the noise. For families with children who could not stand the sound, the adults took the children out for a walk. The sisters also bought a lot of food and gave it to the people who were tearing down the house. With a happy¨Clooking Liberty, the helpers worked excellently. In the evening, everything that could be taken down was taken down, and everything else was smashed. ¡°Ms. Hunt, do we need to clean the rubbish?¡± a worker asked Liberty. . Liberty looked around the house and said, ¡°No, I spent a lot of money to hire people to clean up during the renovation back then too. Leave it to them to clean up now. I¡¯ll consider this as reimbursing my money for the cleaners from back then. ¡± Serenity walked around the house. The drywall was taken down cleanly and the floor tiles were pried up and shattered. Since Liberty said there was no need to clean up, theyplied. It would be left to Hank and the others to deal with when they came back. ¡°Thank goodness we took your advice and let your cousin arrange for workers to help out, Jas. Professionals not only get the job done quickly, the results are also pretty impressive. ¡± Jasmine grinned. ¡°This is their job. It¡¯s only right to ask them to help. ¡± ¡°Ask your cousin how much thebor cost and send the invoice to me. I¡¯ll pay them for their work. ¡± Jasmine hummed. ¡°I already did. He¡¯ll let me know the amount and I¡¯ll tell you ¡°Okay. ¡± then. ¡± The two returned to Liberty, and Serenity asked her sister, ¡°Is there anything else?¡± ¡°There¡¯s also the wiring. I was the one who paid for it, but it¡¯s dark now so it¡¯s not convenient to remove them. Tell the workers to just cut the wires, and we¡¯ll leave. ¡± Serenity immediately ryed that to the workers and they got to work. hapter 5 When that was done, the things that Hank bought with his money were moved back into the house. The group of people worked efficiently. When Zachary arrived, everyone was already downstairs helping to move the things to the trucks. ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary got out of the car and walked toward Serenity. The person who got out of the car next to him was Josh. Josh deliberatelygged behind by a few steps and put some distance between himself and the couple. He only approached after they had exchanged a few words. ¡°Hello, Serenity. ¡± Josh greeted Serenity with a smile. Serenity looked at him and thought he looked rather familiar. It then clicked in her mind that he was Zachary¡¯s colleague who Zachary shared a good rtionship with. Although she had never met Josh in person, she had seen him a few times with Zachary before. ¡°Hello. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡± Josh introduced himself. ¡°Myst name is Bucham. I heard Zachary mention that your sister is moving, so I came over to see if there¡¯s anything I can help with. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Bucham, but we¡¯re more or less done. ¡± Serenity knew that this was the colleague whom Zachary had introduced to Jasmine as soon as she heard the man¡¯sst name. She quietly looked at Josh for a while and felt that he was a good match for her best friend. Chapter 554 Chapter 554 Chapter 554 Zachary said that unless it was an outstanding man, he would not introduce the man to Serenity¡¯s best friend. It seemed he was living up to his words. Josh was a little regretful that he came at the wrong time. He looked at Jasmine, who was directing everyone to move Liberty¡¯s stuff. When she saw him, she walked over and greeted him, ¡°Mr. Bucham. ¡± ¡°Ms. Sox. ¡± Josh smiled back and asked with concern, ¡°Are you feeling better from your cold?¡± ¡°Yes, thank you for your concern. ¡± Serenity quietly took Zachary away so Josh and Jasmine could talk. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. When they were by themselves, she praised her husband. ¡°Zachary, your colleague is quite brilliant. Is he also a director in yourpany? I saw him when you came out of the hotel. ¡± ¡°Yeah, he¡¯s also a director with a very high position. Everyone calls him Mr. Bucham. ¡± He suddenly leaned into Serenity¡¯s ear and whispered, ¡°He told me not to say, but since we¡¯re husband and wife, there¡¯s no harm telling you. Mr. Bucham has won the trust of our CEO and is his right¨Chand man. It can be said that apart from the CEO, Mr. Bucham has the highest status in thepany. ¡± Serenity blinked. ¡°He¡¯s that powerful?¡± Zachary nodded seriously. ¡°He¡¯s truly amazing. Everyone in the industry will feel awed at the mere mention of him. ¡± Serenity looked at Josh again. Zachary turned her face back and quickly gave her a peck on the cheek, saying in a low voice, Don¡¯t look at him. I¡¯m better looking than him. ¡± ¡°He¡¯s the person closest to Mr. York, so I just wanted to look at him again. The people around. Mr. York are exceptional. Mr. York himself must be amazing as well. It¡¯s no wonder Elisa was infatuated with him for so long and unable to give him up. ¡± Zachary straightened his back and said warmly, ¡°If Mr. York could make someone as remarkable as Mr. Bucham to work for him willingly, then he¡¯s no doubt beyond amazingpared to Mr. Bucham. ¡± ¡°Was Mr. Bucham the one who helped my sister collect the evidence of Hank cheating?¡± Zachary was struck silent. Did he identally expose Josh¡¯s identity as an informant? Serenity actually managed to guess that it was Josh. ¡°You said that it was your friend who helped us. I can¡¯t think of anyone else other than Mr. Bucham. ¡°You also said that in yourpany, Mr. Bucham¡¯s status is second only to Mr. York¡¯s. I know that influential people have strong connections. Who else can help you with that favor besides. Mr. Bucham? You can¡¯t have troubled the great Mr. York for my sister¡¯s affairs, right?¡± He mentioned before that it was hard to even see Mr. York in thepany. That was why Serenity thought that he had asked Josh for help. Zachary could not help but reach out and rub Serenity¡¯s head. There was a smile in his eyes. Nana really found me a treasure. You¡¯re always full of surprises. ¡°I did ask Mr. Bucham for help. He helped me because I helped matchmake him with Ms. Sox. ¡± Serenity expressed her understanding. She sensibly did not say a word about how capable Zachary was to build connections with such a powerful person. ¡°How is the demolition going? Did you take pictures?¡± Zachary changed the topic. He refused to admit that it was also because he was a little nosy. Serenity paused before saying, ¡°I forgot to take pictures. Anyway, whatever could be taken down was taken down, and those that couldn¡¯t be taken down were smashed. The house has more or less returned to how it was before the renovation. ¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°That¡¯s how it should be!¡± Seeing that everyone had loaded everything onto the truck, he took Serenity¡¯s hand and said, ¡± Let¡¯s go to Liberty¡¯s ce and help her. ¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go to the store to pick up Sonny first. ¡± Zachary agreed indulgently. ¡°Okay. ¡± Chapter 555 Chapter 555 Chapter 555 After a lively afternoon, calm finally returned after dark. Back in the day, Liberty was especially attentive when setting up this small home and spent a lot of money on it. Now, all the appliances she bought were removed. She could not fit all of them into her rented house, so she picked some of themonly used ones to keep and sell the rest as pre¨Cowned items instead of moving them to her sister¡¯s ce. It was somewhat like a farewell to the past. Liberty¡¯s rented house was not cleaned up yet, so it was not convenient to cook. Thus, she invited everyone to a hotel for dinner. It was also a celebration of regaining her freedom. Liberty happily bid farewell to her past. Meanwhile, Hank was not idle either. He went to Jessica¡¯s rented apartment at nine o¡¯clock in the evening. ¡°Jessica, is this all you have?¡± Hank saw that Jessica did not have many things packed. He went up to her and asked her while pulling the suitcase, ¡°Have you finished packing everything?¡± ¡°I usually live alone, so I don¡¯t have many belongings. I¡¯ve finished packing. I threw everything I didn¡¯t want. ¡± away Jessica held her beloved bag and a plushie she hugged to sleep as she followed Hank out the door. ¡°I¡¯ve stopped renting the unit. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± ¡°Good. My ce is much better than this apartment. ¡± ¡°Has Liberty moved out?¡± Jessica locked the door of the apartment, removed the key to the apartment from her bunch of keys, and gave it to the security personnel of the building downstairs. The guard was the apartment owner¡¯s rtive. She said to him, ¡°I told the owner that I¡¯m not renting the apartment anymore. I¡¯ve never dyed or owed the rent and utility payments either. You guys just have to clean it up a little. There are many appliances that I didn¡¯t move either. ¡± What she meant was, if the security guard had the unit cleaned up quickly, they could keep at lot of appliances that she left behind. After receiving the key, he turned around and asked his wife to go clean the unit. Hank pulled the suitcase and walked toward his car with Jessica while saying, ¡°Liberty sent me a message before it got dark. She said that she had already moved out. ¡± At the same time, she also sent him her bank ount number so he could just transfer money. to Sonny directly. She would delete Hank¡¯s contact as well as his phone number. ¡°Remember to tell her to return the key to the house. ¡± 1/2 Since they were divorced, Jessica did not want to let Liberty have the opportunity to return to the house again. From here on, the missus of that house was her, Jessica Yates. Later, she would take a picture of the house and send it to her family group. She would let her family see the newlywed house that her boyfriend had prepared for her. It was guaranteed to reap a wave of envy. ¡°Liberty said she left the keys to the house with my neighbor opposite my unit. I¡¯ll get it from themter. ¡± After getting into the car, Hank said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Jessica. Liberty isn¡¯t the kind of person who will regret her decisions. In the future, I¡¯ll only belong to you. No one will fight with you over me. ¡± He leaned over and kissed Jessica on the cheek, saying in a husky voice, ¡°Let¡¯s go for a few rounds tonight. ¡± Jessica pushed him away with a charming smile. ¡°We have to work tomorrow. ¡± ¡°I can give you a day off to rest at home. You can go shopping when you¡¯re well rested. Liberty moved away all the things that she bought. Just go ahead and buy whatever you want to buy for our house. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Jessica dreamed of having a suite in the city. Now that she finally had the opportunity to own one, she had to decorate Hank and her home. with care. Her taste was definitely better than Liberty¡¯s. She would make the home cozier than before so that Hank would want toe home every day. Hank drove while talking to Jessica about their future. The two of them fantasized about their beautiful life ahead and finally returned to Bright Boulevard. As soon as they entered the residential area, Jessica praised, ¡°The environment here is good, and the upancy rate is also very high. There¡¯s even Wiltspoon Wood High nearby, so we¡¯re in its catchment area. Hank, you really have good foresight to buy a ce here. ¡± ¡°Yeah, I bought a house here because I saw that it was near Wiltspoon Wood High and was int the catchment area. Fortunately, I acted quickly. If I waited until now, I wouldn¡¯t be able to afford it. It¡¯s too expensive. ¡± The speed at which house prices soared was beyond the reach of ordinary people. Hank parked his car in his designated parking spot. Chapter 556 Chapter 556 Chapter 556 ¡°Which floor is our unit?¡± ¡°Sixteenth floor. ¡± Hank carried Jessica¡¯s suitcase out of the car, pulled it, and took Jessica inside. A neighbor bumped into them at the elevator and exchanged greetings with them, then asked, ¡°Mr. Brown, didn¡¯t your wife bring a group of people over to move out this afternoon? Why are you still coming back to live here?¡± ¡°She was moving her stuff out. ¡± The neighbor nced at Jessica and seemed to understand. He smiled at Hank and left. It was no wonder Hank was chased by Liberty with a kitchen knife for five blocks. It turned out that he was cheating on his wife. The couple should be divorced, right? Liberty just moved out this afternoon, and Hank came home with a beautiful woman on the same night. He would not be so tant unless he was already divorced. ¡°Does he suspect something?¡± Jessica was a homewrecker, after all, so she still felt uneasy. Hank pulled her suitcase with one arm while embracing her shoulders with the other. He swept her into the elevator with a smile on his face. ¡°Have you forgotten what I did this. afternoon? I divorced Liberty, so I¡¯m single now. You¡¯re my girlfriend. So what if they know? ¡°Jessica, we can be together openly and honestly now. There¡¯s no need to care about what others say anymore. ¡± Jessica paused before saying, ¡°That¡¯s right, you¡¯re divorced. ¡± She did not have to sneak around anymore. The elevator took two of them to the sixteenth floor. ¡°We¡¯re here. ¡± Hank pointed to the door of his house. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°That¡¯s the one. ¡± Jessica followed him. He took out his keys and pushed open the door. It was dark inside and that gave him a brief moment of bewilderment. In the past, no matter howte he came back, there would be a light turned on at home. waiting for him. Now, that light would never turn on again. ¡°It¡¯s so dark. Turn on the lights. ¡± Jessica reminded him to switch on the lights when she followed him into the house. Hank reached for the switch behind the door habitually and pressed it, but no lights were lit. He thought he did not press the button properly and pressed it again. The house was still dark. What was going on? Was there a power outage? However, other people¡¯s homes were lit. There was no way a power outage only affected hist unit. Hank took out his cell phone, turned on the shlight, and shone it toward the light switch. It was perfectly fine, and he did not press the wrong button either, so why were the lights not working? ¡°Hank!¡± Jessica suddenly tugged his shirt and shouted in horror, ¡°Are we in the wrong house?¡± This was Hank¡¯s house? There was no luxurious refurbishment at all. The walls were not even stered, and there was garbage everywhere in the house. This was definitely not Hank¡¯s home! ¡°What-¡± Hank swept his phone in an arc. With the small shlight, he saw everything in the house. clearly and was so shocked that he dropped his phone on the ground. Chapter 557 Chapter 557 Chapter 557 Crack. The phone screen shattered when it hit the ground. Hank hurriedly bent down to pick up the phone and once again looked at everything at home without caring about the broken screen. Jessica also turned on the shlight on her cell phone and together they looked at the state of the house. Never mind theck of luxury decoration, it was even worse than a shack. ¡°Hank, are we in the wrong house?¡± Jessica was still holding onto false hope. Hank walked inside and said, ¡°That¡¯s impossible. My key wouldn¡¯t be able to open the door if it was the wrong house. ¡°This is my house. What happened here? Where are my appliances? Is that all there is?¡± The more Hank looked, the darker his expression became. He stood in front of the dining table which he had paid for. A lightbulb moment hit him. He suddenly understood. It was Liberty. ¡°Liberty!¡± He shouted up as the thought crossed his mind. ¡°She smashed up my house!¡± Hank was furious. Jessica immediately said, ¡°Let¡¯s call the police now. They¡¯ll arrest her and make herpensate for it too. She should at least pay for the renovation fee after smashing your home like this. ¡± Renovation cost? Hank wanted to call the police, but when he heard Jessica mention the renovation cost, he immediately ended the call. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you calling? Is it because you can¡¯t bear to? Do you still have feelings for her?¡± Jessica saw him hang up the call immediately after dialing and she was livid, so she blurted out without thinking. She stopped renting her apartment and packed everything to follow him home. She had been looking forward to living in avishly decorated home and being able to show off a little in her family group. However, the house turned out to be even worse than a shack. That was not just a mere rain on her parade, it was a torrential downpour thatpletely drenched her from head to toe with the cold prating from inside out. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°We can¡¯t call the police. It was Liberty who paid for the renovation fees back then. She probably spent more than four hundred thousand on it. She once told me to reimburse her during the divorce, but I refused. ¡± Hank¡¯s eyes shed with hatred, and he said with resentment, ¡°She said that she¡¯ll use her ways to get the renovation fees back. I figured that I won¡¯t have to fork out money, so it didn¡¯t matter to me what she would do. I thought at most, she¡¯ll move the furniture away. I didn¡¯t expect her to even take down the drywall. ¡± Jessica was speechless. Although Hank did not call the police, he could not help but call Liberty. However, she did not answer. After thinking about it, he suspected that she had blocked his number, so he used Jessica¡¯s phone to call her instead. She picked up. ¡°It¡¯s me. ¡± Hank could not control his anger and questioned her in a stern voice, ¡°Liberty Hunt, what is the meaning of this? You wrecked my home!¡± ¡°It¡¯s still there. That¡¯s how it looked when you first bought it. ¡± Liberty had just put her son to sleep and was ready to wash up and go to bed. When she received a call from her ex¨Chusband, she quietly walked out of the room so as not to wake her son. Her sister and brother¨Cinw left only ten minutes ago. ¡°You-¡± ¡°I told you, if you won¡¯t refund me the renovation cost, I¡¯ll get it back in my own way. I just took back what I was owed for the renovation. It¡¯s not your money anyway, so what are you angry about?¡± Chapter 558 Chapter 558 Chapter 558 Hank paused before asking, ¡°Couldn¡¯t you have at least cleared away all the garbage?¡± Libertyughed. ¡°There was a lot of garbage when the house was first renovated too, and I was the one who paid for someone to clean it up. You didn¡¯t reimburse me for that either. I¡¯m just collecting my money back now. ¡± ¡°How much does it cost to hire someone to clean up? Why are you haggling with me over that little bit of money?¡± ¡°Why shouldn¡¯t I haggle? That¡¯s my money. My money doesn¡¯t grow on trees. Why should I give it to you? I¡¯ll get back every penny I¡¯ve spent. ¡± Hank was speechless. After a long time, he gnashed his teeth and said, ¡°Fine, you win!¡± ¡°I¡¯m only getting my renovation fee back. There¡¯s nothing to win. Your house now looks like what you paid for. ¡± Hank was so angry that he hung up the phone. He wanted to throw the phone, but Jessica quickly grabbed it. ¡°That¡¯s my phone. Don¡¯t throw it. ¡® ¡°Damn it!¡± Hank could not do anything else but repeated those two words. As Liberty had said, she was merely getting her renovation money back. The ce he bought was unfurnished. There was no one he could me. ¡°What now, Hank?¡± Jessica did not expect Liberty to be so ruthless. It was no wonder Hank did not want her anymore. A vicious woman like her would not be able to remarry. Jessica cursed Liberty a million times in her heart. ¡°I won¡¯t stay with you in a house like this. ¡± She wanted to live in a luxurious home. ¡°I already stopped renting my apartment. Where are we going to live now?¡± Hank scratched his head in annoyance and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go to a hotel and find a ce to stay tomorrow. We¡¯ll rent an apartment to stay in while we get this ce renovated. It used to be furnished ording to Liberty¡¯s liking anyway. ¡°Now, we¡¯ll renovate it based on our preferences. How much money do you have, Jessica?! Jessica instinctively said, ¡°This is your pre¨Cmarital property. I won¡¯t pay for the renovation even if I have money. I¡¯ll only shell out money for the renovation if you transfer the house to my name and give me a sense of security. ¡± She was not as stupid as Liberty, who was willing to pay for the renovations even without her name on the title deed. ¡°Besides, you have to treat this house as our marital home. Of course you have to be the one paying for the renovation. Houses for newly¨Cweds are always prepared by the groom. ¡± Hank was silent for a while before saying, ¡°I¡¯ll handle the money and you¡¯ll take care of it. I¡¯m too busy with work to manage trivial matters like these. ¡± ¡°You need to work, but so do I. I¡¯m still your secretary. Will the work you have be lesser than mine? Ask your parents to handle it. They¡¯re always at your sister¡¯s ce looking after her children anyway so that shouldn¡¯t be a problem. ¡± Her future inws had a son, but they were always helping their daughter. Only someone like Liberty could tolerate it but not Jessica. It was fine if her inws did not help her, but they could not help Chelsea either. If they helped Chelsea, then Chelsea would have to take care of them in their old age. Chelsea benefitted from them now, so she had to take care of them in the future. Jessica would not care about them. Hank was silent again before saying, ¡°Let¡¯s go to a hotel first. We¡¯ll leave the renovation matters for next year. It¡¯s almost the New Year¡¯s now, so it won¡¯t be easy to hire anyone. We haven¡¯t picked the materials we want either. There¡¯s no rush. Just take it slow. ¡± Jessica hummed. There was no other choice. The two silently left the house. Hank locked the door and turned to leave. Jessica called out to him and pointed to her suitcase. ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to help me carry my suitcase?¡± Hank turned around and helped her with the suitcase. ¡°I was so angry at Liberty that it slipped my mind. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Jessica pursed her lips and said nothing. She was infuriated too, but she could not settle the score with Liberty. Chapter 559 Chapter 559 Chapter 559 Hank was furious whereas Serenity felt today went by spectacrly. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. After she and her husband left Liberty¡¯s newly rented apartment, she wasughing the entire way home. Zachary was amused. ¡°Don¡¯tugh too hard or your stomach will hurt. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll still be happy even if my stomach hurts. Hank must be home by now. I wonder what his reaction was when he saw the state of his ce. He must have thought he entered the wrong house. Haha, I can¡¯t help butugh when I think of his reaction. ¡± ¡°Let me join in on the fun too!¡± Zachary then fell into Serenity¡¯sughing spell. Heughed until he almost hit the street light. He swerved in fright and managed to avoid the collision. Serenity was so startled that she forgot tough. When it was safe, she said, ¡°Zachary, is your driving okay? I can drive instead. My driving skills are exceptional. Racing won¡¯t be a problem either. ¡± ¡°I got my driver¡¯s license when I was eighteen. I¡¯m an experienced driver. Just now was just an ident. Iughed too hard and got distracted. ¡± Serenity was a little stumped before she finally said, ¡°Okay, I won¡¯t talk to you anymore. You focus on driving. ¡± She turned her head to look at the olddy in the backseat. Seeing that the woman seemed to be sleeping, she reminded her husband, ¡°Nana is asleep. Turn down the music. ¡± Zachary did as he was told. Mrs. Lane stayed at Liberty¡¯s house and did not follow them back. Serenity yawned. ¡°I¡¯m sleepy too. ¡± ¡°We¡¯re almost home. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll just take a nap. Wake me up when we get home. ¡± ¡°Your nap willst until morning. Don¡¯t sleep. Home is just ten minutes away. Let¡¯s talk. ¡± Serenity gave him a side nce. ¡°We might die if I talk to you. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He spoke after a while. ¡°Serenity, in my life, no one except for you has attacked me like that. ¡°I¡¯m telling the truth. ¡± Serenity leaned on the headrest and took out her phone to watch short clips. Some clips were particrly funny and dispelled her sleepiness, and they finally made it home. Grandma May seemed to have a built¨Cin rm clock in her body and woke up just as Zachary parked the car. Everyone was tired after working all day. Grandma May did not tease the couple and went upstairs to wash up and go to sleep. She already knew that the young couple was staying together, so that meant Serenity was not shy anymore. She moved her everyday items to Zachary¡¯s room. Zachary watched her move her belongings piece by piece. His eyes were full of affection. He very much liked this feeling of them having each other in their lives. He took her pajamas, handed them to her, and said in a soft voice, ¡°Go take a shower first, Seren. It¡¯s veryte now. Rest early and sort it out tomorrow. ¡± ¡°What time is it?¡± Serenity asked but she took out her own phone to check the time. ¡°It¡¯s half¨Cpast eleven!¡± She muttered, ¡°It¡¯s sote. I¡¯m going to take a shower. ¡± She took the pajamas he handed her, went to get the toiletries she was using, and entered the bathroom. By the time she came out of the bathroom, her skincare products were already sorted by Zachary. ¡°Seren, I arranged it for you. What do you think? Which brand do you usually use?¡± Zachary was fishing for credit. Serenity only nced at it, then climbed into bed and went to sleep. Her body was curled up with her hands covering her stomach. Her stomach hurt. In the past, she would only have abdominal pain on the first day of her period. This time, however, it only started to hurt today. It might be because she ran around and overworked during the day. Chapter 560 Chapter 560 Chapter 560 ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Seren?¡± Zachary noticed something was wrong with her and quickly walked over. He sat down on the edge of the bed, reached out to tug her body, and asked with concern, unwell?¡± ¡°My stomach hurts. ¡± ¡°Are you feeling ¡°Your stomach? Are you bloated because you ate too much during supper?¡± Serenity red at him. ¡°No? Then why does your stomach hurt?¡± Serenity rolled over and turned her back to him. ¡°You won¡¯t understand. I¡¯ll be fine if I lie down and bear with it for a while. ¡± Zachary frowned. He stood up then bent down to pick her up from the bed again. His handsome face said seriously, ¡°I don¡¯t know medicine, but a doctor does. I¡¯ll send you to the hospital. Don¡¯t try to endure it. It¡¯ll be toote for regrets if you bear with it and it turns out to be a big problem. ¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need to go to the hospital. I just¡­ It hurts because I¡¯m having period cramps. ¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°Your¡­ period¡­ O¨COh. I get it now. ¡± He quickly ced Serenity back on the bed. ¡°Why does it hurt?¡± He had no clue that period would bring pain to women when Aunt Flo visited. . There were no young girls in his family, and he had no contact with women except those from his father¡¯s generation. Thus, he genuinely had no idea about such things. When Serenity had her period, he would make hot cocoa for her because he had seen his father prepared it for his mother before. That was why he knew that girls could drink hot cocoa during their menses. ¡°Maybe it¡¯s hurting because I was out and about during the day, and because of the cold weather. Please brew me a cup of hot cocoa. ¡± ¡°Okay, hang in there. I¡¯ll go prepare it for you now. ¡± Zachary quickly rushed to make the hot drink and even called his mother while he was in the kitchen. ¡°Zack, your mom is asleep. Call again tomorrow. ¡± The person who answered the phone was his father. ¡°Dad, can you wake Mom up? I have something to ask her. ¡± ¡°What¡¯s so important that you have to ask her now? I told you, your mother is asleep, so don¡¯t wake her. Tell me what¡¯s the issue. Maybe I can help you solve it. ¡± In Liam¡¯s opinion, his son¡¯s problems were not as important as letting his wife sleep. ¡°Dad, do you know of any medicine that can relieve menstrual cramps?¡± Liam said after a pause, ¡°Are they for you?¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°What are you talking about? My wife needs them. ¡± ¡°You scared me to death. I thought you went for a sex reassignment surgery and became a woman. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Although your mom and I want a daughter, we¡¯ve long epted the fact that we only have a son. We¡¯re looking forward to having a granddaughter now. Don¡¯t even think about getting a sex reassignment surgery. ¡± Zachary was amazed by his father¡¯s thought process to be able to think of something as absurd as a sex reassignment surgery at this hour. ¡°Go get a warmpress for her to apply to her abdomen. You can also make her drinks like hot cocoa or chamomile tea. Actually, just have a child soon and it¡¯ll be fine. ¡°Your mom was like that in the past too, but she got a lot better after giving birth to you. Her cramps would only hurt badly when she was tired. ¡± ¡°All right, I get it. ¡± Zachary hurriedly hung up the phone, afraid that his father would say something shocking again. He made the hot cocoa for Serenity and brought it into the room. ¡°I¡¯m going out to buy some medicine for you. ¡± He swiftly took the car keys and left. Serenity turned around and tried to call out to him, but only saw his back as he closed the door. He was wearing a nightshirt and slippers¡­ Zachary was someone who cared a lot about his image, but because of her, he forgot that he was in his sleepwear and hurried out to buy medicine. Serenity was warmed by his action. It turned out that even an iceberg could thaw into such a caring man. Chapter 561 Chapter 561 Chapter 561 Sitting up, Serenity took the cup of hot cocoa and slowly sipped on it. She had no idea whether it was Zachary¡¯s care for her or the hot drink working its magic, but she felt a lot better after the cup of cocoa and another lie-down. By the time Zachary was back with something to relieve her pain, Serenity was scrolling the news on her phone. ¡°Why are you on your phone when you¡¯re sick?¡± Zachary drew close and snatched the phone out of her hands before stuffing the pain-relief medicine into her hands. He said, ¡°It¡¯ste. The pharmacy was closed. I went to the nearby hospital and got a doctor to prescribe you some pills. Take some and go back to bed. ¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity quietly stared at him. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± She jolted up and stood before him, bringing her arms around his waist while emotionally uttering, You¡¯re so good to me, Zachary. ¡± As Zachary embraced her, he could guess that she must be feeling better after a cup of cocoa. He dotingly remarked, ¡°You¡¯re my wife. Who¡¯s going to be good to you if not me?¡± Now that Serenity could see he was good to her, Zachary hoped she would not dump his sorry *ss when she found outter that he lied to her. Hopefully, she would look back and think about his dedication, love, and concern for her. Nana said that he had to go for her heart. Sweet talk was not his thing. Plus, she cringed at it too. Zachary had to knuckle down on the tiny details in life and melt her heart bit by bit until she was willing to open her heart and let him in. Only then, they could have a future together. ¡°Zachary. ¡± ¡°Yes?¡± ¡°Do you know what you were wearing when you went out? It¡¯s a dressing gown. ¡± Dumbstruck, Zachary nudged her away and lowered his gaze to his clothes. Indeed, he had his dressing gown on. ¡°You also wore loafers out. ¡± Zachary took a look at his feet. No wonder his toes were feeling the chill when he was out. It turned out that he wore his house loafers out. It was a good thing that he went outte at night, so no one saw him. Otherwise, he would hit the headlines in Wiltspoon¡¯s local paper tomorrow. ¡°I was so concerned about you that I didn¡¯t notice what I was wearing when I went out. ¡± Zachary held her to sit back on the bed and held her hands. Unable to feel the ring, he immediately raised her hand up high. With a scowl, he asked, ¡°Where¡¯s the wedding ring I gave you?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t feelfortable wearing it while working, so I took it off when I got to work. ¡± Peering at his grimacing face, Serenity immediately added, ¡°I¡¯ll put it on right away when I get to the shop tomorrow. I won¡¯t ever take it off again. ¡± ¡°I told you not to remove it once it was on you. You have to show Shawn that you¡¯re married or he will always pine after you and never give up. By taking the ring off, he would think that our rtionship is rocky and that he has a chance. ¡¯ Her tender hand loomed up against his face and stroked him gently. Next came her sultry soothing. ¡°My bad, Zachary. Don¡¯t be angry, okay? You¡¯ll get wrinkles from frowning constantly. You¡¯re only a few years older than I am. You should take good care of yourself before I dump you for aging a lot faster than me. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you dare!¡± Clutching her against his chest, he lowered his head to ravish her lips as a punishment before letting her ¡°I¡¯ll drive you to the shop tomorrow. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. I¡¯ll only leave for work when you put the ring back on. If I ever find you without the ring, I¡¯ll buy all the rings in every jewelry store in Wiltspoon and put them on all ten of your fingers to dere my entitlement over you!¡± Serenity murmured, ¡°Do you have that kind of money?¡± She kept her voice pretty low. Did he fancy himself as the dominant CEO in fiction? It was not like he was loaded to the point he could buy all the rings in every jewelry store in Wiltspoon. Picking up on her mumbles, Zachary made a moue at her. Chapter 562 Chapter 562 Chapter 562 Out of everything Zachary had said to Serenity, the point that caught Serenity¡¯s attention was money. His wife reckoned that he, the heir of the Yorks and the head of the multi-billiondor York Corporation, had no money¡­ Letting loose of her, Zachary got up and walked away. Serenity blinked her eyes. Was the petty guy angry again? She got up too, but instead of cheering him up, Serenity poured herself a ss of water and downed the pills he bought. He paid no heed to his appearance and wore his dressing gown and loafers to get her something to help with the pain. It would be a waste of his effort if Serenity did not take the medicine. It would probably fuel his anger too. Zachary soon returned to her side. ¡°Put your hand out. ¡± He ordered. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity watched as he took out a red jewelry box. She asked hesitantly, ¡°Is this a ring?¡± Zachary opened the jewelry box and grabbed her left hand. Taking the gold ring out of the box, he put it on her ring finger. ¡°This is the ring I first bought. Iter thought the Eternal diamond ring was more beautiful. That was why I gave you that ring instead. You can wear this gold ring for now until we get to the shop tomorrow to get the Eternal diamond ring. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Zachary bought a pair of gold rings to give Elisa a reality check. With that in mind, he bought an extra ring. The rings came in handy now. After putting the gold ring on Serenity¡¯s finger, Zachary removed the Eternal diamond ring and wore the other gold ring. He was dead set on wearing a matching pair with Serenity! He was such a tyrant. Zachary was bossy, petty, and not to mention, jealous. Serenity roasted her man in her mind. Having put on the gold ring, Zachary grabbed Serenity¡¯s hand and locked fingers with her. He then pulled out his phone with his free hand and took a picture of their intertwined fingers. Serenity uttered amusedly, ¡°Are you posting it on Facebook?¡± Zachary was without a word. Seeing that he posted the picture on Facebook, Serenity pinched his cheek. ¡°You¡¯re such a tyrant, but I like it. Send me the photo. I want to share it on Facebook to show off our affection too. ¡°Will I get dissed for posting all the mushy stuff online in the middle of the night?¡± Serenity said as she tapped on her phone. Once she published the photo on Facebook, she put her phone back on the bedside table and hooked the tyrant by the neck,nding on the bed together. ¡± Don¡¯t be mad. Let¡¯s get some sleep. ¡± ¡°Serenity. ¡± Zachary brought his inner tyrant to life. ¡°You¡¯re mine. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not yours. I¡¯m my own person. I don¡¯t belong to anyone. ¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes were fixated on her. Letting out a yawn, she snuggled up against his warm embrace and drifted into dreand. She refused to discuss the matter further with him. It took a while before Zachary leaned in to purr in her ear. ¡°Serenity, I feel vulnerable. You¡¯re tooposed. I¡¯m afraid to lose you. ¡°What should I do with you?¡± Serenity was deep in her slumber to hear his murmurs, unaware that behind his domineering exterior was his vulnerability and fear. Of course, Zachary had iting. To quote Grandma May, Zachary shot himself in the foot. Zachary¡¯s Facebook friends were his friends, buddies, and important clients. It was a rare sight to see Zachary post on Facebook, let alone putting hearts and flowers online and announcing his marital status. With his photo making rounds online, it caused quite a stir among the upper crust of Wiltspoon. Everybody wanted to know the identity of the luckydy who married Zachary. Chapter 563 Chapter 563 Chapter 563 Zachary held Serenity, intending to meet her in dreand. After closing his eyes, something abruptly came to mind. He gently peeled away from Serenity and sat up. Zachary reached out to grab Serenity¡¯s phone on the bedside table. He posted the photo on Facebook to announce he was married within his circle. The photo would definitely get out in the open. Zachary was not afraid of the photo getting circted because the photo only showed a pair of hands. It would protect Serenity from the media vultures for now. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. However, Serenity¡¯s post on Facebook might be seen by Elisa. Since Serenity and Elisa were close, the girls would have added each other on Facebook. Clive could see his photo through others while Elisa would find the photo on Serenity¡¯s Facebook. By making aparison, Elisa would realize that Serenity was his wife. Zachary could not let Elisa know about him and Serenity for now. Serenity and Mrs. Stone had done a DNA test, and the results would be out in two days. No matter the oue, it would not change the fact that Serenity and Elisa hit it off. Should his cover be blown, Zachary shuddered to think of the consequences. Grabbing Serenity¡¯s phone, Zachary tapped on her Facebook app, but she had logged out. ¡°Her password¡­¡± Zachary furrowed his brows. He was watching beside her when Serenity was logging in. Her password was¡­ He harked back for a moment before attempting to key in a password. The first attempt came out wrong. So was the second attempt. Taking a pause, Zachary forced himself to keep his cool and not to panic. He dug back into his memory for the letters Serenity had tapped on. After a few minutes of silence, Zachary tried once more to key in the password. This time, he got into her Facebook. Zachary grinned widely, feeling happier than when closing a multi-billion-dor deal. He quickly searched Serenity¡¯s list of friends on Facebook and found Elisa. Thank goodness Elisa used her actual name. Zachary then tapped on Elisa¡¯s profile and blocked her from Serenity¡¯s Facebook posts and stories. Serenity shared the photo on her stories, so the photo would be long gone by the time Serenity realized that Elisa could not see her posts and stories. He thanked his lucky stars that he and Serenity published the photote at night. Their friends were fast asleep in bed. No one had liked the photo Serenity posted yet. The certain repeat theft offender happilyy back down by Serenity. Struck by a thought, Zachary took Serenity¡¯s phone once more and checked what Serenity saved his contact under. [Mr. York ¨C Husband married at first sight] Zachary was speechless. Serenity was probably concerned she would forget who he was for her to add the remarks behind Mr. York. It was just like when he forgot who she was and deleted her number. He added her number back and added a remark so he could remember her. Putting down the phone, Zachary grabbed his phone and searched for Serenity¡¯s contact. He then changed the contact¡¯s name to ¡°my wife¡±. Serenity would think that it was sweet of him should one day she was to check her name on his phone. As if Serenity would think that. ¡± ¡°Goodnight, Serenity. Please dream of me. ¡± Zachary murmured in her ear before hitting the sack with her in his arms. Serenity had a dreamless sleep until the morning light. Opening her eyes, she found herself alone in bed. She had no idea when Zachary got up. Serenity sat up and noticed that Zachary had put her clothes on the nightstand. She would not be able to miss them when she got up. Chapter 564 Chapter 564 Chapter 564 ¡°That¡¯s so considerate of Zachary. ¡± Serenity took the clothes but was not in a hurry to get out of bed. Instead, she held the clothes in one hand and her phone in another to check her Facebook out of habit. No one sent a messagest night, but a few liked her stories. Nevertheless, she limited her Facebook posts and stories to a few of her closest friends. She did not want those fellows in the same trade to ess her personal life because she preferred to keep her privacy that way. Although Serenity often posted on Facebook, she tended to post on stories as they would be gone after a certain amount of time. Zachary was the first to like her postst night. Serenity was dumbstruck. Did she allow him ess to her Facebook posts and stories when she added him? Maybe she forgot to limit Zachary¡¯s ess when she first added him on Facebook. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Thinking back, Serenity did not publish anything other than her crafts and flowers on the balcony. She felt at ease and relieved that she did not bad-mouth Zachary on Facebook. Zachary pushed the bedroom door open and entered the room. ¡°Are you awake?¡± He was dressed in a tracksuit. It was apparent that he went downstairs for a run. ¡°You still got up early to go for a run on such a cold day. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m used to it. ¡± Closing the door behind him, Zachary approached her and sat on the bed. He asked with concern, ¡°Does your stomach still hurt?¡± ¡°No. ¡± Serenity carried her clothes and slipped out of bed with her phone in hand. ¡°You¡¯re not in a rush to get changed, right? I call dibs on the washroom. ¡± ¡°Go on. I¡¯ll make you breakfast. ¡± Stopping in her tracks, Serenity cocked her head back and asked, ¡°Are you fine in that department?¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes darkened. Picking up on his reaction, Serenity immediately said, ¡°Get your mind out of the gutter. I mean, can you manage breakfast?¡± Zachary rose to his feet and drew close to her before straightening out her messy hair. His voice was husky. ¡°You need to try before you know if I¡¯m fine in that department. ¡± Serenity was at a loss for words. Since it seemed to Serenity that Zachary was hitting on her, she did not know what to say. Her response might justnd them in bed too soon. ¡°But I rarely make my own food ever since I started working at York Corporation. Work has been busy. ¡± Although Zachary had joined thepany for training and on-the-job learning before taking over York Corporation, Nana had requested that her grandchildren practice independence in managing themselves and not be waited on hand and foot at home. They were to pick up after themselves. On asion, Nana would want to try her grandchildren¡¯s cooking on a whim. She would point out the chef of the day to cook up a few of their specialties. Nana mentioned that although they were rich, they should master various life skills. It was never a bad thing to equip themselves with skills as they would onlye in handy. With many talents under their belts, they would be able to make it out on their own even if they were to leave the shelter of their family. Thanks to Nana, the grandsons became useful in the kitchen. It had been a while since Zachary cooked anything, so he was a little rusty. With sparkling eyes, Serenity uttered in anticipation, ¡°I get to try your cooking. ¡± Her excitement delighted Zachary. At least, she was looking forward to it and supporting his gesture. ¡°Get dressed. I need a change of clothes too, and then I¡¯ll make you breakfast. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Serenity carried her clothes and turned her heel to the washroom. After closing the door, she posted on Facebook. [The weather is chilly today, but a sun lives inside me, melting my heart. ] Chapter 565 Chapter 565 Chapter 565 Serenity¡¯s heart melted at Zachary¡¯s warm gestures while on the other side, Elisa¡¯s spirits were dampened as she was given a rude awakening before she even got out of bed. As Zachary changed the settings on Serenity¡¯s Facebook, Elisa did not see the photo on Serenity¡¯s stories. It was her sister-inw who showed her the photo. Her sister-inw, Alice, knocked on the door and entered her room when Elisa just woke up. Alice quietly tapped on a picture on her phone and showed Elisa. Since Elisa had just gotten up, she could not understand the meaning behind her sister-inw¡¯s actions. Elisa asked, ¡°Alice, who¡¯s showing this mushy stuff online? Are you trying to get under my skin for being single by showing it to me?¡± Alice stared at her without a word. In fact, Alice gave her blessing to Elisa to fight for true love. As Zachary was outstanding in every single way, he would make the perfect couple with Elisa. s, Zachary was not into Elisa. Elisa had tried to move on, but years did not chip away her love for him. Hence why she boldly professed her love for Zachary and went after him. To everybody¡¯s surprise, Zachary suddenly revealed that he was married. Alice suspected that Zachary deliberately delivered the blow so Elisa would get over her feelings for him. However, her husband received a screenshot from a friend this morning. It was a screenshot of Zachary¡¯s Facebook post. Zachary had published a photo. Although there was no caption, anybody could see that Zachary was announcing that he was married on his Facebook page. Clive sent the screenshot to Alice¡¯s phone so thetter would show it to Elisa. It was to get Elisa to give up on Zachary. Alice even told her husband off for making her do such a thing and put Elisa down first thing in the morning. Clive said that Elisa would find out sooner orter. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. The matter would not be kept under wraps for long since the higher society of Wiltspoon was aware of Zachary¡¯s post. As Elisa¡¯s family, they should show the photo to Elisa before anybody mentioned it to her. It would save Elisa from thinking they tried to hide it from her. ¡°Why are you looking at me like that, Alice? It¡¯s not like I posted the photo. ¡± Sitting up, Elisa extended her arm and took the phone from Alice. She took a closer look at the photo and said, ¡°Let me see who¡¯s shing lovey-dovey stuff early in the morning. Are you onto some gossip and want to share the juicy bits with me¡­ Zachary¡¯s Facebook?¡± Alice nodded and replied, ¡°Your brother said you had asked him to look into whether Zachary was really married. Your brother refused, didn¡¯t he? Now that he received this screenshot, he told me to show it to you. ¡°Zachary posted the photo on Facebook, announcing that he¡¯s married in our circle. He did not wear a ring on purpose for you to get over him. He¡¯s really married. Look, the ring is not photoshopped. ¡± Although Elisa stopped pestering Zacharytely after he dropped the news on her, she had been wishfully thinking that he bought a ring to wear on his ring finger to get her to move on. Now that she had seen Zachary¡¯s Facebook post, her hopes came crumbling down. He was really married! Color washed off Elisa¡¯s face. Chapter 566 Chapter 566 Chapter 566 Feeling bad, Alice gave Elisa a hug and consoled her, ¡± Elisa, you should stop yearning for him since Zachary¡¯s married. He¡¯s not the only good man on earth. You¡¯ll find better men once you let go of him. ¡°You¡¯re a great girl to me, Elisa. Don¡¯t beat yourself up just because Zachary doesn¡¯t like you. Take my advice. Forget Zachary. Your brother and I will find you a good man who is better suited for you and yours alone. ¡°I promise you will live happier than Zachary. It might not be all sunshine and roses for the woman to marry a stoic man like Zachary. Think about it. Who Enter title¡­ 11/23/22, 10:56 AM Read Married at First Sight Chapter 566 https://novelxo. html 2/5 would want to be with an aloof man?¡± Elisa bit her lips, refusing to shed tears. Worried Elisa might draw blood from the furious biting, Alice ran her mouth about her husband. ¡°Clive is an *sshole for making me a meanie bright early in the morning.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Don¡¯t do that, Elisa. You¡¯ll only hurt yourself. ¡°Cry it out if you¡¯re feeling sad. Cry it all out. I¡¯m not an outsider. You¡¯ll feel better after crying. ¡°How about I take you shopping? We¡¯ll buy anything and everything you want. Why don¡¯t you look for a fun time with your friends?¡± Elisa lifted her arm to rub her eyes and loosened the bite on her bottom lip. She tried to curl her lips, but her smile was uglier than her crying face. She said, ¡°I¡¯m fine, Alice. I already knew. I knew when I saw the wedding ring on Zachary¡¯s finger the other day. ¡°You¡¯re right. There are so many good men under the sun. Zachary¡¯s not the only one. He doesn¡¯t have to be the one for me. I don¡¯t want to love him anymore since he belongs to another. That¡¯s good. I can finally get over him. ¡± Elisa went to her brother and cried in his arms when she saw Zachary wearing the ring for the first time. Now, there were no more tears to shed. There was no use bawling over it anyway. She would cry for days on end if crying could make Zachary single. 11/23/22, 10:56 AM Read Married at First Sight Chapter 566 https://novelxo. html 3/5 ¡°Are you really not going to cry, Elisa? You¡¯ll feel better after letting it all out. ¡± Elisa stared at her sister-inw, caught in between tears andughter. ¡°Do you really want to see me cry, Alice?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want you to bottle up your feelings. It would make you feel better after releasing your pent-up emotions. ¡± ¡°I have already cried for him. ¡± Elisa took her sister-inw¡¯s phone once more and was fixated on the photo for a long time before saying, ¡°I wonder who was able to steal Zachary¡¯s heart and get him to marry her. I think the woman must be someone gorgeous and caring. ¡± It took tender-heartedness to ovee callousness. ¡°I have a fiery temper. Plus, I¡¯m willful. No wonder Zachary doesn¡¯t like me. ¡± ¡°No, Elisa. You¡¯re a nice girl. I admire your character. It¡¯s just not meant to be as Zachary doesn¡¯t reciprocate your feelings. It¡¯s okay. Your Mr. Right must be out there somewhere, waiting for you. He¡¯ll soon find his way to you once you take your eyes away from Zachary. ¡± Elisa burst intoughter. ¡°Alice, you don¡¯t have to rack your brains to find the words tofort me. My world woulde crumbling down if today was the day I found out Zachary is married, but I discovered this earlier. I had not harassed him and stopped thinking about him for a while. 11/23/22, 10:56 AM Read Married at First Sight Chapter 566 https://novelxo. html 4/5 ¡°Although I have not let him gopletely, I have my pride. I can get over him now that he has a wife. I won¡¯t take what¡¯s not mine. ¡°He would be a man who can¡¯t keep it in his pants and is disloyal to his marriage if he strayed away from his wife. I wouldn¡¯t want to love a man like that. ¡± With Elisaughing, Alice felt a little relieved. Alice reached out and lovingly ran her fingers down Elisa¡¯s hair while uttering, ¡°Do you know what I like most about you, Elisa? You¡¯re a little willful and fiery, but you¡¯re right-minded. Chapter 566 Feeling bad, Alice gave Elisa a hug and consoled her, ¡± Elisa, you should stop yearning for him since Zachary¡¯s married. He¡¯s not the only good man on earth. You¡¯ll find better men once you let go of him. ¡°You¡¯re a great girl to me, Elisa. Don¡¯t beat yourself up just because Zachary doesn¡¯t like you. Take my advice. Forget Zachary. Your brother and I will find you a good man who is better suited for you and yours alone. ¡°I promise you will live happier than Zachary. It might not be all sunshine and roses for the woman to marry a stoic man like Zachary. Think about it. Who would want to be with an aloof man?¡± Elisa bit her lips, refusing to shed tears. Worried Elisa might draw blood from the furious biting, Alice ran her mouth about her husband. ¡°Clive is an *sshole for making me a meanie bright early in the morning. Don¡¯t do that, Elisa. You¡¯ll only hurt yourself. ¡°Cry it out if you¡¯re feeling sad. Cry it all out. I¡¯m not an outsider. You¡¯ll feel better after crying. ¡°How about I take you shopping? We¡¯ll buy anything and everything you want. Why don¡¯t you look for a fun time with your friends?¡± Elisa lifted her arm to rub her eyes and loosened the bite on her bottom lip. She tried to curl her lips, but her smile was uglier than her crying face. She said, ¡°I¡¯m fine, Alice. I already knew. I knew when I saw the wedding ring on Zachary¡¯s finger the other day. ¡°You¡¯re right. There are so many good men under the sun. Zachary¡¯s not the only one. He doesn¡¯t have to be the one for me. I don¡¯t want to love him anymore since he belongs to another. That¡¯s good. I can finally get over him. ¡± Elisa went to her brother and cried in his arms when she saw Zachary wearing the ring for the first time. Now, there were no more tears to shed. There was no use bawling over it anyway. She would cry for days on end if crying could make Zachary single. ¡°Are you really not going to cry, Elisa? You¡¯ll feel better after letting it all out. ¡± Elisa stared at her sister-inw, caught in between tears andughter. ¡°Do you really want to see me cry, Alice?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want you to bottle up your feelings. It would make you feel better after releasing your pent-up emotions. ¡± ¡°I have already cried for him. ¡± Elisa took her sister-inw¡¯s phone once more and was fixated on the photo for a long time before saying, ¡°I wonder who was able to steal Zachary¡¯s heart and get him to marry her. I think the woman must be someone gorgeous and caring. ¡± It took tender-heartedness to ovee callousness. ¡°I have a fiery temper. Plus, I¡¯m willful. No wonder Zachary doesn¡¯t like me. ¡± ¡°No, Elisa. You¡¯re a nice girl. I admire your character. It¡¯s just not meant to be as Zachary doesn¡¯t reciprocate your feelings. It¡¯s okay. Your Mr. Right must be out there somewhere, waiting for you. He¡¯ll soon find his way to you once you take your eyes away from Zachary. ¡± Elisa burst intoughter. ¡°Alice, you don¡¯t have to rack your brains to find the words tofort me. My world woulde crumbling down if today was the day I found out Zachary is married, but I discovered this earlier. I had not harassed him and stopped thinking about him for a while. ¡°Although I have not let him gopletely, I have my pride. I can get over him now that he has a wife. I won¡¯t take what¡¯s not mine. ¡°He would be a man who can¡¯t keep it in his pants and is disloyal to his marriage if he strayed away from his wife. I wouldn¡¯t want to love a man like that. ¡± With Elisaughing, Alice felt a little relieved. Alice reached out and lovingly ran her fingers down Elisa¡¯s hair while uttering, ¡°Do you know what I like most about you, Elisa? You¡¯re a little willful and fiery, but you¡¯re right-minded. ¡± Chapter 567 Chapter 567 Chapter 567 ¡°That¡¯s what I admire the most about you, unlike some people who don¡¯t care if others are married. They find someone they fancy ande in between the marriage of others under the pretext of finding true love. Those people disgust me the most. ¡± Alice was speaking from the heart. She embraced Elisa as her inws would because her sister¨Cinw had good qualities. Alice would not even bother if Elisa was not a decent person. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Alice. Go and catch up on sleep. Tell my brother not to worry about me. It¡¯s not like 1 can never find a man. ¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯m heading back to my room. Do you want to go back to sleep?¡± ¡°Nah. I¡¯ll go to spend some good time with Serenityter. That reminds me, the pastry chef made some great desserts yesterday. Is there any left? I want to bring some to Serenity and Jasmine. They have a thing for desserts. ¡± These girls were just like her sister¨Cinw. Previously, Elisa¡¯s family did not have a personal pastry chef as their chef could take on the dual role. Since Elisa weed her sister¨Cinw into the family, her brother had hired a pastry chef to create all kinds of sweet delicacies for her sister¨Cinw. Alice said with a smile, ¡°I thought the food was delicious too, so I told the pastry chef to bake some today. You can head downstairs and check. The pastries should be hot out of the oven. Bring a few boxes to Serenity. You can deliver the desserts to her every day if she likes them. ¡± Knowing that Serenity may possibly be her husband¡¯s cousin, Alice already had a good feeling about Serenity before even meeting her. ¡°She likes them for sure. ¡± The mention of Serenity and Jasmine sparked joy in Elisa¡¯s speech. Since the girls were foodies, it was no wonder they became best friends. They shared the same qualities. After changing the subject, Elisa seemed to have put Zachary¡¯s marriage behind her. Only then, Alice wasfortable returning to her room. Clive was waiting for his wife¡¯s return in the bedroom. ¡°How¡¯s Elisa?¡± ¡°She¡¯s stronger than we think, probably because she already knew. But you had to make me go to her first thing in the morning. It really put her down. You should be the bad guy next time. I don¡¯t want to do it again. ¡± Clive went up to hug his wife and uttered with a grin, ¡°It¡¯s easier for you to have a heart-to- heart with her. Elisa doesn¡¯t like what I tell her. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re a straight shooter, but that¡¯s what I like about you. Other women would be rolling their eyes at you ¡°That¡¯s why I only love you and only want to be with you. ¡°You¡¯re such a smooth talker. Who is Zachary¡¯s wife? Did you manage to find out?¡± Clive shook his head. ¡°I made some calls around, but they all said they only saw the photo and circted the news. No one knows who Zachary¡¯s wife is. The Yorks are keeping her identity under wraps. ¡± In fact, Clive had to take off his hat to the Yorks. The Yorks¡¯ mouths were sealed on their personal lives unless they wanted the public to know. Even their close friends and family could not get any information out of them. Zachary¡¯s announcement of his marriage on Facebook was a prime example. The news made headlines in Wiltspoon, but the Yorks kept mum about the whole thing. The reporters had been waiting at the Yorks¡® front gate the whole night. Apparently, they were still there now. The press was also lurking in front of York Corporation, trying to pry into the identity of Zachary¡¯s wife from the employees. Nevertheless, the employees of York Corporation buttoned their lips. The media reporters probably wanted to run Zachary down for only giving them crumbs. Zachary only posted a pair of hands without showing the woman¡¯s face. Although itching with curiosity, the reporters could not catch a glimpse of Zachary¡¯s wife. The feeling of being tethered to suspense was awful. ¡°Aren¡¯t the paparazzi all¨Cpervasive? There hasn¡¯t been any chatter about this among Alice had to admit that she would like to know the identity of the new Mrs. York too. them. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡± Clive fell silent before replying, ¡°I can imagine the paparazzi cussing right now. Unless Zachary reveals her identity to the press, we probably will never find out. ¡± After a pause, Clive regrettably added, ¡°It¡¯s my biggest regret that I couldn¡¯t acquire a talent like Josh. ¡± Zachary would never know how lucky he was to gain Josh¡¯s loyalty. Josh had a say in the Bucham family and shared a close rtionship with the head of the household. Zachary having Josh¡¯s help meant he got the Buchams¡® full support. Aliceforted her husband. ¡°There¡¯s bound to be regret in life. No one has it perfect in life. The people around you are good and no lesser than Josh. Josh just happens to be born in the Bucham family. ¡± Chapter 568 Chapter 568 Chapter 568 Clive sighed. There indeed was bound to be regret in life. Serenity went to her sister¡¯s new ce to pick Mrs. Lane and Sonny up before heading to the shop with Zachary. She did not take a ride in Zachary¡¯s car but since he insisted on escorting her by driving, she could only ept his kind gesture. Sonny was in a much better ce with his mother spending time with him. Now that he was willing to be in Mrs. Lane¡¯spany, Liberty could finally go back to work. Liberty could not take a long leave since she was still on probation. Once at the shop, Zachary reminded Serenity, ¡°The Eternal diamond ring. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I¡¯ll put it on now. I promise it will always be on my finger. ¡± She then went behind the cash register and opened the drawer with a key. The expensive diamond ring sat quietly in the corner of the drawer. Zachary watched with a grimace. She was so nonchnt with the ring. Serenity pulled out the ring and wore it on her ring finger. She had removedst night¡¯s temporary gold ring before leaving for work today. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°See this?¡± Serenity unted her hand. Zachary was pleased, atst. ¡°Hurry up and get to work. You¡¯re going to bete. ¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. All she did was hurry him along. She was not clingy toward him at all. H ¡®Sonny. ¡± Emerging from inside, Jasmine saw Sonny and approached with a smile. She then took Sonny from Mrs. Lane. Jasmine nodded at Zachary. Zachary wanted a kiss from his wife before he proceeded to work, but Jasmine¡¯s presence dashed his wish. Zachary faintly hummed an acknowledgment in response to Jasmine and nced at the woman whose sights were no longer on him. Turning on his heel, he left. He stopped after a few steps and looked back at Serenity. Serenity put her arm out to show her best friend the ring because Jasmine took notice of the rock on Serenity¡¯s finger Serenity was too upied to give Zachary any attention A certain somebody felt down because to Serenity, Jasmine ranked higher than him Sigh. Two minutester, Zachary drove his car away His vehicle had not traveled more than a hundred meters when he encountered Elisa¡¯s sports car. Since both were driving fast, they did not pay much attention to the person behind the wheel as they were moving past each other. By the time they went by each other, it struck Elisa, and she swiftly looked back at the receding car. The car was long gone Nevertheless, she could still see the car te number and car logo It was a national MPV Did her eyes deceive her? She caught a glimpse of the driver when driving past It seemed to be Zachary Chapter 569 Chapter 569 Chapter 569 Elisa thought she was seeing things. Zachary traveled around in a Rolls Royce with a convoy of ck personal security cars. Besides, there was no way Zachary would be here. No one in his family was in Wiltspoon School. Elisa put the matter behind her. Upon reaching Serenity¡¯s bookshop, Elisa pulled up as Serenity carried Sonny out. ¡°Serenity, how do you know I was here?¡± Elisa got out of the car and added with a smile. ¡°You even came to greet me with Sonny ¡°Nah. I¡¯m taking Sonny to the supermarket. ¡± Elisa drew close and reached out to carry Sonny, but Sonny turned away and pulled his arms. around Serenity¡¯s neck. He said, ¡°I want Ant Swer. ¡± Serenity exined, ¡°Sonny is getting better, but he only wants people who are close to him. ¡°The Browns are a real piece of work!¡± Elisa cussed the Browns as she did not get to hug the adorable Sonny. She asked, ¡°Has your sister divorced Hank?¡± ¡°They split up yesterday. She got the divided assets and renovation costs back. ¡± Serenity carried Sonny back into the shop. With Elisa here, she could hold off the shopping forter. ¡°You¡¯re here early. Are the DNA test results out?¡± Since Elisa was here alone without Mrs. Stone, the results probably revealed that Serenity was unrted to Mrs. Stone. ¡°The DNA results aren¡¯t out yet. My mom will collect the results tomorrow afternoon. I¡¯m in a horrible mood. Coming here for a chat will make me feel better. My mom wanted toe along, but I told her not to. I want to vent my feelings. 11 Elisa had been madly in love with Zachary for many years. It was impossible for her to let go of her feelings for Zachary so soon. She was in pain and agony, but she did not want to cry in front of her family. Elisa did not want to give her family something to worry about. She was willing to confide in Serenity as Serenity understood her. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Serenity asked with concern, ¡°Did something happen? You don¡¯t look too good. ¡± Jasmine said hello to Elisa. Mrs. Lane went to hold Sonny so that the missus could have a good talk with Ms. Stone. After carrying Sonny away, Mrs. Lane hid behind a huge bookshelf and sent a message to Old Mrs. York and Mr. Zachary to inform them of Ms. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Stone¡¯s presence at the shop. Grandma May was not at the shop today as she was ying chess with the senior citizens in the neighborhood. Mrs. Lane dared say that Grandma May would make a name for herself in Brynfield if she yed on for days. The old missus was great at chess She had a bubbly personality and was the gem of the Yorks. Jasmine came out with a pot of tea. Elisa seldom drank tea, but she quit being the heiress of the Stones when she came to Serenity¡¯s ce. She took whatever Serenity and Jasmine drank. Chapter 570 Chapter 570 Chapter 570 Elisa downed a cup of tea before agonizingly opening up, ¡°Serenity, Mr. York is married Serenity blinked. ¡°Didn¡¯t you mention before that you saw the ring on his finger?¡± Why did Elisa bring up that Mr. York was married then? 11 Elisa fell silent for a while before replying, ¡°I saw his wedding ring, but I was hoping that he was wearing the ring on purpose to get me to move on. ¡± Jasmine asked, ¡°Are you sure now that Mr. York is married?¡± Elisa nodded and answered, ¡°Mr. York posted on Facebook announcing that he¡¯s married. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. The news has caused a stir within the upper society in Wiltspoon. Many want to know who his wife is. ¡°The press is stalking York Corporation and the Yorks¡® residence to get a scoop. It¡¯s a shame nothing was on media tforms yet before I came over. I guess they haven¡¯t gotten any information yet. ¡± Serenity was surprised. ¡°Why is the media so interested in his marital status?¡± Jasmine and Elisa turned to look at Serenity at the same time. Serenity smiled embarrassedly. ¡°I don¡¯t keep up with the news regarding Mr. York because we live in different worlds. Why should I follow his news when I¡¯m not going to meet him ever? With that kind of time, I might as well craft a few trees and earn more money. ¡°I only know about him through Jasmine because she loves to hear gossip and talks about him constantly. ¡± Elisa remarked after a pause, ¡°He¡¯s the heir of the Yorks, the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon, and the head of York Corporation. Hees from a high ce and is good¨Clooking. He had been single without hearsay of a past rtionship. The sudden announcement of his marriage really made waves. ¡°Of course, the paparazzi want to know the identity of the luckydy who married Mr. York. It¡¯s not just the paparazzi, but we¡¯re eager to find out too. It¡¯s a pity my brother couldn¡¯t find out anything. I wonder who Mrs. York is. ¡± Elisa poured herself another cup of tea and took sips to quench her thirst before adding, ¡°Woe is me. Not only did I lose, but I don¡¯t even know who I lost to. ¡°I want to know what it took for the woman to get Mr. York to marry her. He shields her well from the outside world. Mr. York must love her a lot. ¡± Ultimately, Elisa felt as though she was holding a knife and stabbing herself with it. It hurt her SO. Yet, she had to face reality. ¡°My Mr. York said that his CEO dotes on his wife, but he doesn¡¯t know who the wife is either. Maybe¡­¡± Serenity stared at Jasmine. Puzzled, Elisa also turned her attention to Jasmine. With both pairs of eyes on her, Jasmine grew suspicious. ¡°Seren, why are you looking at me like that? Don¡¯t tell me you think I¡¯m the mysterious Mrs. York. Let me tell you. I grew up listening to stories about Mr. York, but I have never met him in person. ¡°The closest I ever got to Mr. York was the night we went to attend the event. You know that too. Mr. York was surrounded by his security detail. I couldn¡¯t squeeze my way through to the front to see his face. ¡± Thinking Serenity had firsthand news since her husband worked at York Corporation, Elisa asked, ¡°Tell me, Serenity. Is Jasmine Mr. York¡¯s wife?¡± ¡°She¡¯s not. ¡± Serenity could not believe these girls had wilder imaginations than her. The pair had already conjured a theory before she could speak. She immediately said, ¡°We have to count on Jasmine to find out who Mr. York¡¯s wife is. ¡± Jasmine pointed at herself. ¡°Me? I¡¯ve never even met Mr. York. How would I know who his wife is? I would¡¯ve called the paparazzi to sell the information if I knew the answer. At least I could earn some cash. ¡± ¡°You had a blind date with Josh. My husband told me that Mr. Bucham holds a high position next to the CEO of York Corporation. You can get close to him and pry information from him so we get firsthand gossip. ¡± Jasmine was speechless Turning over, Elisa mped on Jasmine¡¯s shoulder and shook her. ¡°Come on, Jasmine. Ask Josh now. He must know since Mr York trusts him the most. ¡± Chapter 571 Chapter 571 Chapter 571 Dizzy from the shaking, Jasmine pried Elisa¡¯s fingers from her shoulders and said, ¡°Elisa, Mr. Bucham and I only went on one blind date, and that was it. He won¡¯t tell me if I ask him. ¡± ¡°I can¡¯t believe you went on a date with Josh Bucham!¡± Elisa eximed in amazement. ¡°Josh is the most eligible bachelor in Wiltspoon, and I¡¯m talking about among the elites. ¡± Elisa had no doubt about the authenticity of Jasmine¡¯s date with Josh because Jasmine was the daughter of a local wealthy man. Jasmine¡¯s aunt was also the missus of the Lowe family. Jasmine often attended higher society events with her aunt. However, Mrs. Lowe stopped bringing Jasmine around to parties after Jasmine¡¯s lying stunt at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday celebration. ¡°Serenity¡¯s husband set up the date. ¡± Serenity smiled and admitted openly. ¡°My husband does seem to be in Mr. Bucham¡¯s good books. Seeing that Mr. Bucham was always busy at work and single, he boldly set him up with Jasmine. He thought Jasmine would make a good couple with Mr. Bucham. ¡± ¡°Serenity, your husband is amazing to be chummy with Josh. No wonder he¡¯s in his element at York Corporation. Josh is Mr. York¡¯s most trusted man and holds a position higher than the other York family members. ¡°It¡¯s not just the employees who want to befriend him, people like us also want to get in with him too. It¡¯s a shame he and Mr. York are best friends. Mr. York doesn¡¯t like me, so even Mr. Bucham would stay away at the sight of me before I could get a chance to be chummy. ¡± Jasmine and Serenity were lost for words. Mr. Bucham sounded in wicked. Even an heiress like Elisa wanted to buddy up with him. While Mr. Bucham could open doors to opportunities, Mr. York was¡­ the golden ticket. Serenity believed anybody who could get into Mr. York¡¯s circle would have Wiltspoon at the palm of their hands. ¡°Jasmine, what do you think about Mr. Bucham?¡± Elisa wanted to get information on Zachary¡¯s wife through Josh as she needed full closure. Jasmine spread her palms. ¡°Nothing much. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. We get along, but I don¡¯t get that love at first sight. I should invest in the rtionship if I want to get into it, but I feel he¡¯s out of my league after learning who he is. I should keep my distance. ¡± Josh would be speechless if he heard this. it meant Elisa told her, ¡°Why don¡¯t you try and go out with him if you two get along? I¡¯ve heard a lot about him from my brother. He¡¯s a man you can count on. Since Josh was willing to go on a blind date with you, that he wanted to try and get serious with you. ¡°Don¡¯t talk about him being out of your league. Your family owns a lot of properties. Heck, your family owns half the street ofmercial stores up north. Your aunt is Mrs. Lowe. How are you not good enough for Josh? Josh isn¡¯t in line to take over the Bucham family. He¡¯s simply the head of the Bucham family¡¯s nephew. ¡°Jasmine, I¡¯d been obsessed with Mr. York for many years. Although there¡¯s no hope of us getting together, I need to know who I lost to. Go on and date Mr. Bucham. Help me get information from him. I can give you money. You can just see it as a paid assignment. ¡± Jasmine was at a loss for words. Serenity stared nkly at Elisa. Why did she get a feeling that Elisa was trying to get thetest gossip about Mr. York? ¡°I¡¯ll give dating a go if Mr. Bucham invites me out. ¡± Jasmine had a good impression of Josh. ¡°Let me tell you, Jasmine. You must hang onto Josh. He¡¯s a nice guy. You can get firsthand gossip at your fingertips when you two get together. ¡± Jasmine was rendered speechless. Serenity burst intoughter. Realizing what she had said, Elisa covered her mouth to chuckle too. Josh, who was ving away for Zachary at the office, felt a burn in his ears. Using his phone camera in selfie mode, he checked his ears and found them red. ¡°Who¡¯s dissing me behind my back?¡± Josh mumbled. He must be getting railed pretty badly as his ears turned scarlet. Chapter 572 Chapter 572 Chapter 572 Putting down his pen, Josh got up and drew near the window to look down. He looked at the paparazzi standing firmly outside thepany entrance and murmured, ¡°They sure have the patience to stay fromst night until now. Seriously, Zachary. All it takes is for Zachary to show off his rtionship and boom, themunity¡¯s rocked to the core. ¡± Well, it only shook themunity. All was calm with the missus. Zachary shielded the missus well. Everybody in the office had seen Serenity, but no one had the guts to b it out. The York family kept mum, refusing to let a word out despite the reporters¡® incessant inquiries. ¡°Do you know who Mr. York¡¯s wife is?¡± was the first thing that popped out of everyone in the upper crust¡¯s mouth today. Business clients would join in on the gossip after closing deals, snooping on the identity of Mr. York¡¯s bride. Josh was annoyed. Since he was best buddies with Zachary, many tried to pry information from him. Josh knew the most but could say nothing about it. After dropping the bombshell, Zachary nonchntly upied himself with work as it was business as usual for him. Escorted by his team of security, Zachary went to have a meal at Wiltspoon Hotel after work. As always, he called Mr. Zen to deliver a few of Serenity¡¯s favorites to her. Zachary also asked Mr. Zen to buy a bouquet of flowers at the florist to be delivered together with the food. The only thing that caught Zachary by surprise was running into Clive at the hotel entrance. The Stones have their own hotels. Plus, Clive and Zachary were businesspetitors. Hence why Clive would never really show his face at Wiltspoon Hotel. Yet today Clive was here with clients. His clients must have asked for the business meeting to be held at Wiltspoon Hotel. With two major CEOs crossing paths at the hotel, both stopped in their tracks. Behind Zachary was his security detail while Clive had a few of his important executives and secretaries. at his tail. Both carried an imposing presence. The people following behind these CEOs stopped walking when the big shots came face¨Cto¨Cface. Clive¡¯s eyes immediately ran along Zachary¡¯s left hand. There was a ring on his ring finger. However, it was not the gold ring that Zachary posted on Facebook. Catching on to Clive¡¯s gaze, Zachary openly raised his left hand and put his hand out so Clive could get a closer look. ¡°I heard you posted on social media, unting your rtionship, Mr. York,¡± Clive said. ¡°You¡¯re quite well informed, Mr. Stone. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s hard not to when it¡¯s highly publicized. Did you change into another ring, Mr. York?¡± Lowering his gaze, Zachary stared at his wedding ring and graciously told Clive, ¡°My wife felt the gold ring wasn¡¯t very pretty, so I reced it with the Eternal diamond ring. ¡± Clive grinned. ¡°Your wife has good tastes. ¡± The Eternal diamond ring on Zachary¡¯s finger cost a bomb. It appeared Mr. York¡¯s wife appreciated fine rocks. She must be from a well¨Coff family, but the question was which family. Clive was dying with curiosity. He grumbled about his rival in his mind.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 573 Chapter 573 Chapter 573 ¡°I wonder who the luckydy is. ¡± Although Clive knew his question woulde to naught, he still had to ask. His sister wanted to know who defeated her. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Zachary¡¯s eyes were fixated on Clive for a while before he answered, ¡°Mr. Stone, I¡¯d ask for privacy, so I¡¯m not going to answer that question. ¡± Clive had foreseen getting nothing from Zachary. epting the result, Clive graciously smiled. ¡°You have your wife well protected, Mr. York. ¡± ¡°I promised to love, protect, and cherish her forever when I married her. ¡± Clive replied with a little surprise, ¡°You¡¯re an affectionate man, Mr. York. ¡± His sister and Zachary were not meant to be. Clive had talked his sister into letting Zachary go, but his sister refused to listen. Now, she was devastated. He sighed in his mind. Clive would support his sister to be with Zachary and ease the tension between the rivaling York Corporation and Stone Group if Zachary had fallen in love with Elisa. This was because Zachary only had eyes for one woman in his life. It was forever once Zachary fell in love. In the event of a betrayal, Zachary would never be able to get over the rtionship. ¡°Mr. Stone, you¡¯re a devoted man too, and your wife can¡¯t be happier with you. You¡¯re well known for being uxorious in our circle. ¡± The mention of his wife brought softness along Clive¡¯s facial lines. Grinning from ear to ear, he said, ¡°Just like you said, I promised to love, protect, and cherish her forever when I married her. ¡± ¡°Your rtionship with your wife is enviable. I should learn from you about ways to dote on my wife at another time. ¡± Everybody around was speechless. It was hard for them to imagine the two people, who were not on good terms, sitting together and discussing at length about spoiling their wives. Clive remarked with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re already in the uxorious husband club, Mr. York. ¡± Otherwise, Zachary would not stop to talk to him. After a brief silence, Zachary merrily beckoned to Clive and said, ¡°Since you¡¯re here, I¡¯d like to treat you to dinner. Would you do me the honor?¡± Clive looked at his clients. His clients answered right away, ¡°It¡¯s our honor to dine together, Mr. York. ¡± It was no big deal. They could dine without talking about business. ¡°Well, I can¡¯t say no to your weing invitation. ¡± Clive agreed to have dinner with Zachary. He thought to himself, ¡®People do change after experiencing love. ¡± To think Clive would see the day of Zachary buying him dinner. Clive wanted to pinch himself to see if he was dreaming. Zachary was so easy to talk to today. Both parties gathered for dinner. Themunity¡¯s jaws would drop if word got out about this. Mr. York¡¯s interest in acquiring ways to spoil his wife crazy only made people more intrigued about his wife. Hisbel as an uxorious husband swiftly made rounds in themunity. Chapter 574 Chapter 574 Chapter 574 After listening to a day of gossip about Mr. York¡¯s marriage and wife¨Cdoting tendencies, Serenity applied a facial mask in front of the dressing table at night and said to Zachary, ¡°All I hear is stories about your boss today. ¡± With his game face on, Zachary asked, ¡°Oh. What about?¡± ¡°You don¡¯t know?¡± Serenity turned over to look at him. ¡°Your boss made a public announcement that he¡¯s married, but no one knows who his wife is. Elisa said that caused quite a stir among the higher society. ¡°Zachary, you work at York Corporation. Do you have any firsthand news about the identity of your boss¡¯s wife? ¡°I heard the press waited in front of your office building for a long time but had to leave with nothing. ¡± Pulling a chair over, Zachary sat next to his wife and watched as Serenity put on the facial mask. He grabbed the mask packing for a look at the brand. It was a good and expensive brand. ¡°Elisa gave it to me. I hardly apply facial masks, but I thought I should try it out tonight. ¡± Zachary furrowed his brows and said, ¡°Don¡¯t use the skincare products Ms. Stone gives you. Let me know the brand you often use. I¡¯ll get the products for you. ¡± ¡°Elisa gave me a lot. It¡¯ll be a waste not to use them. Elisa¡¯s a girl. Are you jealous of women too?¡± Zachary extended his arm to prod her face. ¡°I¡¯ll be jealous of anyone who takes away your attention and when you don¡¯t put me first. ¡± ¡°Hehe. Who was it that said he doesn¡¯t know what jealousy is?¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. ¡°Come on, Zachary. Tell me who your boss married. ¡± Zachary replied amusedly, ¡°I thought you weren¡¯t interested in my boss¡¯s affairs. ¡± ¡°I can¡¯t say that I¡¯m not interested, I just didn¡¯t make attempts to pry. Your boss and I are from two different worlds. You barely see your boss even though you work at York Corporation, much less me. I probably will never meet him. ¡°That¡¯s why I can¡¯t be bothered to ask about his gossip. It¡¯s quite themotion this time, so I thought I should ask. ¡°Most importantly, Elisa wants to know who his wife is.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡± Zachary inquired warily, ¡°Why does Ms. Stone want to know? Is she nning mischief against my boss¡¯s wife?¡± Serenity red at him. ¡°Don¡¯t say that about Elisa. She¡¯s not ill in nature. She¡¯s a nice girl, but things are not meant to be between her and your CEO. ¡°Elisa mentioned that she would move on and stop harassing Mr. York if he¡¯s married or has a steady girlfriend. True enough, she stuck to her words. God knows how many times Elisa cried after finding out your CEO is married. ¡°She¡¯d rather dwell in her agony than be all over Mr. York. That act alone puts her above thousands. ¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°I even gave Elisa ideas to chase after Mr. York. She wanted me to be the bride¡¯s maid should she marry Mr. York. Who knew¡­ What¡¯s up with Mr. York anyway? He could¡¯ve announced his marriage sooner so Elisa didn¡¯t have to wait until now to get over him. ¡°I nearly helped Elisa to ruin someone¡¯s marriage. ¡± Zachary twitched by the corners of his lips. It had not been long since he and Serenity got married. Sure, he was single back then. ¡°Elisa wants to find out who Mr. York¡¯s wife is, not because she wants to do something, but she wants. closure in knowing who she lost to. ¡± After a long silence, Zachary remarked, ¡°I told you before. Only Mr. Bucham has an idea about the CEO¡¯s private affairs. However, it¡¯s true that the CEO adores his wife. ¡± ¡°How much does he adore his wife? I keep hearing that, but it would be great to get some examples of his uxorious ways. ¡± Zachary opened his mouth, but no words escaped his lips. Serenity muttered to herself, ¡°But he shields his wife and keeps her away from the public eye. It¡¯s apparent that he¡¯s good to his wife. I didn¡¯t know Mr. York has a lot of influence. I only got to know the magnitude of it after listening to the gossip about him all day. ¡°It¡¯s good that he wants his wife to remain anonymous in case people would stalk her. His admirers might go to the extreme and harm his wife. ¡± Zachary gave a heavy nod. ¡°Yeah. The CEO refuses to show the world who his wife is as a protective measure. ¡± While Serenity was not looking, Zachary discreetly lifted his arm to wipe away the cold sweat on his forehead. Chapter 575 Chapter 575 Chapter 575 ¡°Seren, are Mrs. Stone¡¯s and your DNA test results nearly out?¡± Zachary decisively changed the subject to end the gossip about himself He was only unting his rtionship to announce his marriage on Facebook. It never crossed his mind that it would bring about a stir that upied his wife¡¯s day with gossip. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Elisa said they¡¯ll collect the results tomorrow. ¡± ¡°Oh. ¡± Zachary quickly added, ¡°You¡¯ll meet them again if the results show you¡¯re rted to Mrs. Stone I might not be able to go with you to the Stones¡¯ house I¡¯m going away on business tomorrow¡± Serenity picked her head up to meet his eyes. ¡°I thought you didn¡¯t have to do business trips¡± Zachary stared at her in silence He knew it; she looked forward to him leaving soon Zachary was scared that she would forget who he was when he returned from his trip. ¡°Have you booked the flight yet? What time is the flight? I¡¯W drive you to the airport ¡°I¡¯ll get up early tomorrow to pack for you ¡± Serenity believed she was rather considerate to pack his things and see him off at the airport for his business trip. ¡°I¡¯m taking the 10:35 AM flight. No need to drive me to the airport. I need to head to the office to pick up some paperwork before leaving with a colleague. Thepany arranged for an airport transfer ¡± ¡°Oh. ¡± That would save her the trouble ¡°Send me a text message when you get the DNA test results. I¡¯ll be busy during the trip, so I¡¯ll only have timete at night to read the messages. I won¡¯t miss your messages. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll text you when I get the results¡± H Zachary specifically mentioned his busy work schedule during the trip in case Serenity would call him while Elisa was around during the day. ¡°That reminds me, should we give Jasmine and Mr. Bucham a nudge? Jasmine said Mr. Bucham was out of her league when she found out about his position in thepany. ¡± Zachary replied, ¡°That¡¯s between them. Let them decide how they want to progress with this rtionship. We can only set up the initial date and not anything else. ¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°You got a point. We¡¯ll see where the rtionship takes them, but I think they look good together. I¡¯m rooting for things to work between them. ¡± Jasmine was not that into Josh. Josh was probably swamped with work to make the first move. He did give Jasmine a call and urged her to drink more water when she was sick. ¡°I have another candidate to introduce to Ms. Sox if there¡¯s no chemistry between her and Mr. Bucham. ¡± Serenity asked with concern, ¡°Is the person better than Mr. Bucham?¡± ¡°You can say that, but Mr. Bucham fares better at a fistfight than him. The person isn¡¯t great at self- defense, so he goes around with a team of security. He¡¯s an important client of mypany. The only thing is that his home is a little far and not in Wiltspoon. ¡± The person Zachary had in mind was Remy. He was the younger brother of Ben Young-Johnson, CEO of FC & Co. , in Annenburg. Remy was in charge of the Wiltspoon branch of FC & Co. As Zachary had engaged in business with Remy many times and got to know him, he believed Remy was a dependable man. ¡°Jasmine won¡¯t consider him if he¡¯s not from Wiltspoon. The important client must be a rich boy since you said he travels with a security team. Jasmine doesn¡¯t want to marry into a wealthy and influential family. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°He¡¯s rich for sure. We can forget about it if Ms. Sox won¡¯t consider the rich and powerful. As a matter of fact, others see Ms. Sox as an heiress since her family owns a lot of assets. The Soxes have wealth that many will never see despite working their whole lives. ¡± The locals who struck it rich from the property boom did not see themselves as wealthy. They would continue living like ordinary people, riding their bicycles or e-bikes to work and taking on menial jobs like cleaning and patrolling premises. They did not like to dress up and often went out in their loafers. Chapter 576 Chapter 576 Chapter 576 Unexpectedly, the Soxes had many buildings up for lease and they received a boatload of rental fees That was how the Sox family turned wealthy ¡°Let Jasmine and Mr Bucham develop on their own I think a spark will ignite between them when they¡¯re familiar with each other. ¡± Ever since Serenity heard some stuff about Josh from Jasmine, she felt that Jasmine and Josh were two peas in a pod. They both liked lively ces, and Josh was able to experience tons of drama firsthand ¡°I asked Mr. Bucham He is quite impressed by Ms Sox, so give him a little time and he¡¯ll make more initiative. It¡¯s almost New Year, and everyone in ourpany will be busier than usual, let alone people in positions like Mr Bucham. He¡¯ll have time to deal with his private and emotional affairs during the holidays. ¡± During Zachary¡¯s business trip, Josh and Callum would have to run thepany, so they would undoubtedly be busy. Serenity hummed She also did not want Jasmine to marry far away if Jasmine and Josh got together, it was good for Zachary too since thetter would be able ride on Josh¡¯s coattails He would get a promotion and sry increase, bringing greater wealth to their small family Uh, that would make it seem as if she was selling her friend out for money The husband and wife chatted about matchmaking, and when it was time for Serenity to remove her mask, she got up and went to the bathroom. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. After a while, she came out of the bathroom and climbed straight into bed before kicking off her slippers. Shey on the bed and patted Zachary¡¯s spot beside her while she said. Zachary,e here and let me steal your body warmth. I¡¯ll have good dreams when I¡¯m warm Zachary was exasperated ¡°You¡¯re using me as a hotpress ¡°A hotpress needs to be charged, but you don¡¯t, so you¡¯re much better than a hotpress You¡¯re much more effortless¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. He came over andid down beside her He turned sideways to face her and reached out to tap her head ¡°Is sapping warmth from me the only way you can think of using me?¡± ¡°What else can I think about in this state?¡± Serenity automatically burrowed into his arms. ¡°If I say I want to turn on the heating, you¡¯d say you can¡¯t stand it because it¡¯s too dry. It¡¯s too cold these days, so I can only hold onto you for warmth. ¡± Even if the doors and windows were closed, she still felt cold. The main reason was that the room had too much space ¡°I saw the weather forecast on my phone. The cold air will continue to move south, and New Year¡¯s will be cold and rainy. You should wear more clothes when I¡¯m not at home. Don¡¯t catch a cold. ¡± ¡°I know. I¡¯m not a three-year-old child. I can take care of myself. ¡± Zachary embraced her and habitually picked up her hand with the diamond ring on it. He was relieved to see that it was still intact. He did not forget to admonish her, ¡°You can¡¯t remove the ring while I¡¯m not at home. ¡± ¡°I know. I wear it every day. When I meet Shawn, I¡¯ll make a big show of my finger, okay?¡± How jealousy-inducing! It was guaranteed to make Shawn jealous for the rest of his life. ¡°Remember to think of me every day. ¡± Serenity buried her head in his chest, mumbling something that Zachary could not hear clearly. ¡°Serenity. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m sleeping. ¡± ¡°How are you talking if you¡¯re sleeping?¡± ¡°I¡¯m sleep-talking. ¡± Zachary could not help but smile. He lowered his head and emphasized softly in her ear, ¡°Be sure to think of me. Don¡¯t forget who I am when I return from my business trip. ¡± Chapter 577 Chapter 577 Chapter 577 ¡°My memory isn¡¯t that poor. It¡¯s not like we just only got our marriage license. ¡± Serenity yawned and added, ¡°Go to sleep, Zachary. You have to travel tomorrow. Rest well so you¡¯ll feel energized. ¡± She then leaned over and kissed him gently on the lips. ¡°Good night, Honey. ¡± Zachary¡¯s gaze became intense all of a sudden. He wrapped his arms around her waist, not letting her leave after that peck on the lips she gave him. His dark eyes burned and locked on her pretty face. She was usually barefaced without makeup, but she took great care of her skin, so her face was still looking radiant and smooth, making it pleasant to the touch. She was a natural beauty through and through. Zacahry was already attracted to her the first time they met. However, he hade across plenty of beauties before, so he did not feel anything for Serenity at first sight. ¡°Seren, what did you just call me?¡± She did not react the first time he called her Honey. It was a little depressing when he thought about itter. He thought it was because his tone was not mushy enough and his feelings for her were not deep enough when he called her Honey. He stopped calling her with that pet name after two times. When she called him Honey, her voice seemed to carry an electric current which shot straight into his heart. ¡°Zachary. ¡± ¡°No, you called me Honey. ¡± ¡°So? You¡¯re my husband. ¡± Zachary pressed her head and simply used his burning lips to express his feelings. As the passionate kiss ended and lingered on, Serenity pushed away his wandering hands andy back on the bed. She turned over to her side and said, ¡°Let¡¯s sleep. It¡¯ste. ¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was hoarse. ¡°You go ahead. I¡­ I¡¯ll go take a shower. ¡± He immediately lifted the quilt to get out of bed and hurriedly slipped into the bathroom. It was better not to carry on with such a steamy kiss when the rtionship was just heating up. Zachary almost lost control. It just so happened that now was also not the time. Moreover, taking a cold shower in cold weather was refreshing in its own right! Hearing the sound of sshing water in the bathroom, Serenity adjusted her sleeping position andy t while muttering to herself, ¡°It¡¯s your fault for getting greedy. ¡± She knew that now was not the right time yet, so she only kissed him lightly every time. She did not dare go beyond that. A certain wife who forced her husband to take a cold shower hid under the covers and fought to keep her eyelids open. In the end, she fell asleep before her man came out of the bathroom. The night passed without a word. As dawn came, she was woken up by the sound of a ringing phone. Serenity was toozy to get up and kicked the man beside him instead. ¡°Zachary, help me see who¡¯s calling. Who¡¯s disturbing my beauty sleep so early in the morning?¡± Zachary was woken up by the ringing too and reached out to grab his cell phone. When he saw the screen was dark, he reached for Serenity¡¯s phone and looked at the screen. ¡°It¡¯s from your sister¡¯s mother¨Cinw. ¡± The words ¡°sister¡¯s mother¨Cinw¡± caught her attention. Serenity took her phone from his hand. ¡°I forgot to block their numbers. ¡± Her sister already blocked everyone from the Brown family. ¡°It¡¯s already seven. ¡± Serenity sat up on the bed and answered the phone as she said to Zachary, ¡°I¡¯ll pack up your luggage for youter. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. You go ahead and make breakfast. ¡± ¡°Do you need something?¡± Serenity directed the question to Olivia on the phone. Chapter 578 Chapter 578 Chapter 578 ¡°Serenity, where¡¯s your sister? Tell her to answer her phone!¡± Olivia was blunt and it was clear that she was livid. ¡°Why are you looking for my sister?Thest I checked, my sister has nothing to do with your family anymore. What do you want?¡± Serenity spoke casually. She guessed Olivia called because thetter found out that the renovations to the house were smashed and wanted to settle the score with Liberty in a fit of anger. Their reaction was actually rather slow. It was no wonder Olivia did not know about it until now. On the day Liberty and Hank divorced, the old couple took a taxi home after the formalities were done They wanted to move into Hank¡¯s house the next day. Chelsea¡¯s children had to go back to school to get their report cards, so they waited an extra day Today, the elementary school was officially out. Olivia and her husband brought Chelsea¡¯s family, driving two cars carryingrge bags into the city, intending to stay there for the New Year¡¯s As for why they left so early in the morning, it was also part of Olivia¡¯s n She wanted toe early and make Jessica cook breakfast for the family so she could assert her authority over Jessica. Unexpectedly, when they carried their luggage upstairs and opened the door, they were so shocked that their bags fell to the ground. They first thought they entered the wrong home but after repeated confirmations, they were sure that they had entered the right house. Chelsea immediately called her brother. Hank had been so overwhelmed with the sudden cancetion of his business partnerships for the past few days that he simply forgot to tell his family about the wrecked house. He was still in a daze when he received his sister¡¯s call. When he found out that his parents and sister had alle to the city, he finally remembered this incident and exined it to his family. Olivia immediately called Liberty, but thetter blocked them, so they could not get in touch with her. Thus, she called Serenity instead. ¡°Your sister isn¡¯t with you?¡± Olivia added, ¡°What¡¯s the meaning of this? She smashed up my son¡¯s house! Don¡¯t you know that this is illegal? We¡¯ll call the police!¡± Serenity said coldly. ¡°That was how the house looked when your son bought it. My sister forked out more than four hundred thousand for the renovations, but you were unwilling to refund the fees and told her to pry the floor tiles away if she had the ability to do so. What? Now that she has taken back the renovation fee in her own way, you can¡¯t stand it?¡± Olivia paused before reasoning, ¡°She had lived here for several years, but we didn¡¯t charge her rent. How could she break the renovations into pieces?¡± ¡°My sister washed and cooked for your son for several years. She worked like a nanny, but did you pay her a sry? Even if you were to charge my sister for rent and deduct the amount from her sry as a nanny, you still have to reimburse her with a sum of money. ¡°Rent isn¡¯t as high as a nanny¡¯s sry. ¡± Olivia retorted angrily, ¡°They were a couple. There was no need to talk about money between husband and wife. ¡± ¡°Yes, they were a couple back then. There was no need to collect rent between husband and wife either. ¡± Olivia was livid by Serenity¡¯s refutation. Her face turned red and her heart clenched, but she could not counter anymore. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Chelsea reached out and took the phone from her mother¡¯s hand and ordered, ¡°Serenity, call your sister immediately and tell her toe here and talk to us. It¡¯s her fault we have no ce to stay. She has to make it up to us. Find us a house or book us a hotel room if she can¡¯t find one. Either way, your sister took away more than one million from my brother. ¡± If she had known that her brother had so much money, she would have used her parents to get more money. Her brother was unbelievable. He saved so much money without saying anything, and now half of it went to that fat cow, Liberty. It was more than a million! Chelsea¡¯s heart ached at the thought. She could have spent the money in a different way but now, it was all gone. Since opportunity had presented itself to them now, she wanted Liberty to use the money out and book a hotel room for them. Chapter 579 Chapter 579 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 579 Serenityughed and said, ¡°Chelsea, you should go to the bathroom and wash your face at the sink. Oh, wait, there¡¯s no faucet anymore. My sister paid for all the water pipes, so we sawed them all off I guess you¡¯ll just have to take a piss and see your reflection in it. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Look at how big your face is. ¡°My sister and your brother are divorced They have nothing to do with each other whatsoever How do you get off telling my sister to find a house for you to stay? Was it my sister¡¯s fault that you don¡¯t have a house to live in now? You were the ones who brought this upon yourselves. ¡°If you guys had gone along andpensated my sister for her loss, you would have a ce to stay now s, it¡¯s really cold today. I wonder if you¡¯ll be able to sleep in a house full of holes. ¡°But you have thick skin and flesh. If all of you huddle together, you¡¯ll be able to withstand the bitter cold wind. ¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯m hanging up now. It¡¯s very warm under the covers, so I¡¯m going to catch up on my sleep. Bye. ¡± Serenity hung up the phone. Then, she blocked Olivia¡¯s number, just in case they refused to give up and kept calling to harass her. After being hung up by Serenity, Chelsea was so angry that she cursed, ¡°That woman really pisses me off! Her tongue is so sharp. How can her man stand her?! Mom, what do we do now?¡± Chelsea asked her mother. ¡°We¡¯re already here and brought our family with us. We told the people back home that we¡¯re spending the New Year¡¯s in the city. We can¡¯t go back now, right?¡± ¡°Mommy, hug. ¡± Lucas woke up while in his father¡¯s arms and reached out to his mother for her to carry him. Chelsea hugged her son in annoyance. She said to her father, ¡°Dad, I told you not to agree to Liberty¡¯s request at the onset and not to transfer the money to her. Look! Now, we can¡¯t even find anyone to contact her. She won¡¯t care about us since she already got the money. ¡± ¡°It¡¯ll be hard to see Sonny again in the future. You¡¯ve all been cheated by her. ¡± Chelsea had been having trouble with everythingtely, so her temper was not at its best. There was nothing to do at work, so the management granted her an early annual leave, but everyone else was still going to work. Chelsea felt like her workce was trying to force her out. ¡°Call Hank again. ¡± Mr Brown added, ¡°Liberty held evidence against Hank. If we don¡¯t agree with her, Hank will lose his job. He¡¯s earning so much now. The loss will be even greater if he loses his job. ¡°It¡¯s very normal for Liberty to block us. With what you and your mother just said to Serenity, of course Liberty would block us. Otherwise, would she continue to allow you to harass her? When you guys calm down and stop pestering her, she¡¯ll definitely contact Hank and let him see the child. Besides, even if we don¡¯t know where Liberty lies, serenity won¡¯t move her store. We can still contact Liberty if we go find Serenity at her store. Call Hank and ask him to find a ce for us to stay. In the meantime, tell him toe over first. He then sighed heavenly and said what a mess. A good family was torn apart. My private funds too. Olivia sat on a suitcase and said in distress ording to Chelsea suggestion, I went to that woman¡¯s grandfather and paid him to convince Serenity to persuade Liberty not to divorce Hank. However, he took the money but failed to fulfill my request. They still ended up divorced. My son lost more than a million for nothing, and the house renovations were smashed. So now our losses are even greater than expected. I advised them against divorcing as the cost is just too huge. Olivia cried as she spoke. It was all money. Everyone in the family except for Lucas looked at Olivia. Chapter 580 Chapter 580 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 580 Mr. Brown stared at his wife with a dark expression and asked, ¡°Whose grandfather did you go to?¡± ¡°Who else? It was Liberty¡¯s grandfather Her grandmother was in the hospital, so I went there to see them and presented my request. Old Mr. Hunt said he wanted one hundred thousand, but I refused. After some bargaining, I gave him sixty thousand. ¡°He repeatedly assured me that he would persuade Serenity not to divorce, but Serenity didn¡¯t do so with Liberty. They just took the money and did nothing. ¡± As soon as Olivia was done exining, Mr. Brown flung his hand and pped her on her arm. ¡°Are you stupid? How could you trust those people in Liberty¡¯s family? Besides, it¡¯s not like you¡¯re not aware of the conflict between Liberty and her family. You should¡¯ve gone to anyone except for them. You¡¯re usually smart, but how could you be so foolish this time? ¡°Sixty thousand. You actually spent sixty thousand!¡± Mr. Brown was so angry at his wife that he was about to faint. Olivia said aggrievedly, ¡°I just thought that since it¡¯s not easy to talk to Serenity, we could let her family do it for us. Even if they quarrel, it¡¯ll be a family issue. That¡¯s why I went to them. Old Mr. Hunt said that the hospital just happened to urge them to pay his wife¡¯s medical bills which cost fourty thousand. If I give them sixty thousand, they can use the remaining twenty thousand as the cost of persuading Serenity. ¡± Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s medical expenses were paid using her own money initially. Sheter let the children of the family each pay a little, but they had run out of money. Now that they had to fork out another forty thousand and Olivia coincidentally presented herself at their doorstep, Old Mr. Hunt quickly seized the opportunity. ¡°You¡¯re such a fool. Giving money to that family is the same as flushing it down the drain. There¡¯s no way of getting your money back. ¡± Chelsea chimed in, ¡°Mom, I told you to find someone to help, not to throw away money. ¡± However she quietly thought, ¡°I didn¡¯t know Mom kept so much money to herself. ¡°It seems Hank has been giving our parents a lot of money. ¡°The amount of money they spend on my family is probably only a fraction of what Hank gives them. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m going to Old Mr. Hunt to ask for my money back. They didn¡¯t get the job done, so I won¡¯t stop until I get my money back. ¡± Olivia said resentfully, ¡°When we settle down after this house fiasco, Chelsea and George, you two come with me to find Old Mr. Hunt to collect my sixty thousand. ¡± ¡°Of course we have to get it back. ¡± Chelsea agreed that they needed to get the money back. If Old Mr Hunt took the money and did as requested, they would leave the sixty thousand with him. At least they would have saved more than a million from Hank as well as the renovation of the house. However, since old Mr. Hunt did not get the job done, he had to return the money. Call Hank and tell him toe over immediately. Mr. Brown was so angry at the series of unfortunate Events that he almost got a heart attack. He never thought that his son¡¯s divorce would cost so much. If he had known there was no way to turn back time, they reaped what they sowed. No matter how angry they were, they could only swallow this bitter pill themselves. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Don¡¯t be angry, dad. You¡¯ll harm your body. I¡¯ll call Hank now and tell him toe over. Also, if that Yates girl is with Hank, tell her toe over as well. Olivia came to town early in the morning just so she could assert dominance over Jessica. So she naturally had to call Jessica over, too. Jessica held a great responsibility for her son¡¯s family bing fragmented, chelsea hummed and said, I¡¯ll tell Hank to bring the Yates girl over. If it weren¡¯t for her, liberty wouldn¡¯t have divorced Hank so quickly. With a sister iw like Chelsea, jessica¡¯s new life was just getting started. Chapter 581 Chapter 581 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 581 Chelsea called her brother ¡°I¡¯m on my way there, Chelsea. ¡° Hank knew that his parents and sister¡¯s family had arrived at his ce and he quickly got up. He also woke Jessica. After the two of them briefly freshened up, they rushed toward Bright Boulevard. ¡°Hank, we haven¡¯t had breakfast. ¡± Tll treat you guys to breakfast when I go over. ¡± Chelsea said, ¡°Aren¡¯t you living with Jessica? Can¡¯t you ask her to prepare breakfast for us? There are so many of us. If we go out to eat, it¡¯ll easily cost several hundred. ¡± ¡°We¡¯re also staying in a hotel now since we haven¡¯t had time to look for a ce. There¡¯s nothing in my house now, so there¡¯s no way to cook for ourselves. ¡± Liberty recovered the renovation fees in her own way. There was currently no water or electricity in Hank¡¯s house. Even the kitchen was empty. Jessica could not cook for them even if she was willing to Chelsea was silent for a moment and said, ¡°Liberty blocked all of us. How are you going to contact her? We won¡¯t be able to see Sonny now. ¡± ¡°Sonny usually goes to Serenity¡¯s store. You can see Sonny if you go to her store. There¡¯s no need to go through Liberty. ¡± Hank could not be bothered that he was blocked by Liberty. Although he was furious that Liberty wrecked the renovations, he did not regret it at all. He also did not want to contact her after the divorce, lest Jessica get jealous. ¡°Actually, it¡¯s good if you don¡¯t keep in contact. You¡¯ll have an excuse of not paying Sonny¡¯s child support and can save three thousand a month. ¡± Only Chelsea would think this way. Hank stayed silent. He did not tell his family that he had paid Liberty a year¡¯s worth of child support for his son in advance. ¡°I¡¯m driving now. Let¡¯s talk when we meetter. ¡± ¡°Okay¡± Chelsea hung up the phone and said to her parents, ¡°Hank is on the way. There¡¯s no water or electricity in his house right now, so there¡¯s no way to cook either. He said he¡¯ll treat us to breakfast. It¡¯s been a long time since we dined in for breakfast. Let¡¯s do thatter. ¡± Olivia said painfully, ¡°We have to spend money again? Money is draining like water with Hank¡¯s divorce. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. ¡± No one said anything. It was toote They were already divorced, and the money was already split with Liberty. What else could they do? In the meantime, Serenity was helping Zachary pack his clothes. She was well aware that he was a clean freak and helped him pack his daily necessities so he did not have to spend time buying new ones when he went on his business trip. Zachary finished making breakfast and returned to the room to see the delicate figure walking around helping him take all sorts of things and stuff his suitcase to the brim. He leaned against the doorway and silently watched her pack. Suddenly, an old face popped up in front of him. Zachary was still startled back to his senses when he saw his Nana¡¯s face. Nana. He shouted in a low voice. Why are you grinning to yourself? I thought you were possessed by a ghost. Grandmama teased him. I¡¯ve been your Nana for many years, yet it¡¯s my first time seeing you giggling to yourself. I don¡¯t think you could look more ditsy than you just did. Oh, I should have taken a picture of your silly smile earlier before bringing you back to reality. Zachary was exasperated. Grandmama was now also looking at her granddaughteriw in the room. She touched Zachary¡¯s arm and asked in a soft yet smug voice, how about it? The wife I found for you is qualified in all aspects, right? It¡¯s time for your inspection to end. Thank you, Nana. Zachary sincerely thanked his grandmother. It was her who sent Serenity to him after all. Now that your rtionship is improving, my job will beplete. When you finally have a wife, then I can move on to the next couple. Chapter 582 Chapter 582 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 582 Grandma May said to herself, ¡°Should I start with the second or third grandson?¡± Zachary did not speak, lest his nana told his brothers that it was him who stirred up trouble. ¡°Let¡¯s just start with Callum Who should I match him with?¡± Zachary remained silent. He only knew a handful of youngdies. Rather than asking him to provide Callum with a candidate for thetter¡¯s wife, it would be easier to tell Callum to go to the monastery to be a monk. Well, it was not like Grandma May expected Zachary to provide candidates either ¡°Go in. ¡± Zachary looked at his nana puzzled. Grandma May looked disgruntled. ¡°You¡¯re going on a business trip. Hurry in to say a few words to Serenity. ¡± She had to remind him to do everything. Grandma May sighed and thought, ¡®When I was bringing up this grandson of mine, I taught him everything except how to love someone. Now, he has be a chauvinist who doesn¡¯t understand the mind of a woman. ¡°I thought loving someone is human nature and doesn¡¯t need to be taught. ¡°I was too naive. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment and said, ¡°Can¡¯t you see her helping me pack and humming at the same time?¡± Grandma May was speechless. When Serenity was done packing, she checked again to make sure all the necessities that Zachary used were sorted out. Then, she closed the suitcase and took out her phone to take a picture of it. After putting the phone back into her pants pocket, she dragged the suitcase and walked away. She only saw her grandmother¨Cinw and husband standing at the doorway after taking a few steps. ¡°Nana. ¡± Serenity smiled and called out to the olddy, then pulled the suitcase over. ¡°Zachary is going on a business trip. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. I helped him pack his luggage. ¡± Grandma May was happy that her granddaughter¨Cinw was considerate for her grandson, but she said, Tell him to pack by himself next time. Are you hungry? Zack made breakfast. ¡± I¡¯m famished. ¡± Serenity handed over the suitcase to Zachary and said, ¡°I prepared all your daily necessities for you. If you still need anything when you get there, you can buy them yourself at a supermarket. ¡± ¡°Okay¡± Serenity then removed his apron and left, this apron doesn¡¯t match you. You¡¯re more handsome in a suit. Zachary gazed at her deeply before asking, are the suits you packed the ones you bought for me? In fact, he was the one who bought the suit. Since he threw the one ones that Serenity gave him into the water identally so those could not be worn anymore, serenity replied, I didn¡¯t notice if they were the ones I got for you. The suits in your closet are all the same. When he bursts his lips again, she quickly said, when youe back, I¡¯ll take you shopping and buy you a few more sets to stuff your closet to the brim. After a pause, she added, your wardrobe is getting an overhaul. From now on, you can only wear the clothes I buy for you. Zachary¡¯s icy face melted slightly. He reached out to pinch Serenity¡¯s nose and said, dotingly, you¡¯re so overbearing. Serenity spat in her heart, you¡¯re clearly the overbearing one. I¡¯m just forced to be this way. Let¡¯s have breakfast. Serenity reached out to pull him along. Zachary let her lead him away and reminded her, remember to send me messages. I know. I¡¯ll send you a message every day after I get home from work. Was not a problem to send a good night picture every night. Serenity was quick to agree to his request. Ada. Chapter 583 Chapter 583 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 583 After breakfast, Zachary transferred fifty thousand to Serenity. Serenity saw the transaction and said, ¡°I¡¯m not short of money. ¡± There was sufficient money in the household card he gave her. ¡°I¡¯ll be away from home on business and don¡¯t know when I¡¯ll be back. The new year is around the corner so you¡¯ll have to buy some stuff to ring the old year out. I wired fifty thousand to you so you can get whatever you want. ¡°On the 28th, we¡¯ll return to my hometown for the New Year¡¯s. There are a lot of rtives, so we¡¯ll need to deliver an abundance of gifts. Ask Nana what to give and buy them in advance. Tell me if fifty thousand isn¡¯t enough and I¡¯ll transfer more to you. ¡± Zachary¡¯s reason was indisputable. Upon hearing his exnation, Serenity had to ept the fifty thousand. After so long, this was the first time he mentioned bringing her along to go back to his hometown. In the past, whenever she met his parents, it was always him who informed his parents and rtives to come over. Grandma May¡¯s eyes twinkled when she heard this, but she said nothing and simply smiled. When Serenity went to the balcony to water the nts, Grandma May picked up Snowball and sat next to her grandson and whispered, ¡°Where are you staying if you¡¯re bringing Seren back for the New Year¡¯s?¡± Would it be at the old York residence or just a random house? ¡°Nana, we could still stay at Whitmore Mansion if we clean it up, right?¡± Grandma May grinned. ¡°Yes, indeed we could. ¡± The old York residence that Grandma May was currently residing at was a vi on a mountain built by her and her husband. It was called Wildridge Manor. Whitmore Mansion, on the other hand, was an ancestral house that was incredibly quaint and not far away, with only a ten¨Cminute drive from Wildridge Manor. Grandma May would bring her children and grandchildren back to Whitmore for old times¡® sake and to pay respects to their ancestors. ¡°We¡¯ll stay for a few days during the New Year¡¯s over at Whitmore then. ¡± Whitmore possessed a richer history aspared to Wildridge even though it was not asrge as the latter, but most importantly, it would not raise any suspicion in Serenity if she stayed there. ¡°If that¡¯s your decision, then all right. ¡± Bringing Serenity to Whitmore Mansion for the New Year¡¯s was not lying to her per se since it really was one of the York residences. ¡°I¡¯ll make a call and tell them to clean for a few people to stay for a while and liven up the ce. ¡± Grandma May was ying along with her grandson. As for whether Serenity would be angryter¡­ Heh, that would be a headache for him to solve. Serenity came in from the balcony after she was done watering the nts. She asked Zachary, ¡°Can we leave now? I¡¯ll take you to the office first. ¡± ¡°No need. You take Nana to pick up Sonny and Mrs. Lane. I¡¯ll drive myself to the office. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡± Zachary still had plenty of arrangements to make. It would not be good if Serenity found out about his little secret now. Serenity did not insist. Since there was no need to see him off, she was happy to rx. ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you downstairs, Seren. ¡± Grandma May was someone mindful and went ahead to bring the three pets downstairs, leaving some space for the young couple to be alone. Zachary got up and walked to Serenity. He reached out to embrace her and took her into his arms. ¡°I really want to take you with me. ¡± After a moment of silence, Serenity pushed him away and said, ¡°I can¡¯t help you even if I go be bored and alone in a strange and unfamiliar city while you¡¯re busy working. I might as well stay at home and wait for your return,¡± with you. I¡¯ll She raised her left hand and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll wear the wedding ring. ¡°I¡¯ll think of you and I¡¯ll be sure to send you a message every night before I go to bed. ¡± She felt more at ease if they did not interfere with each other¡¯s lives, just like when they first got married. Now, he was getting clingier by the day. It was just a business trip, but he was dallying and looked as if he wanted to pack her into his suitcase to take her with him. Chapter 584 Chapter 584 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 584 Tilting her head for a moment, Serenity helplessly wrapped her arms around his neck, pulled his head down, and offered him her red lips. Zachary was ted after getting a kiss from his wife which she initiated. He pulled the suitcase with one hand and held Serenity¡¯s hand with the other, and the couple went out together. Grandma May was downstairs waiting for the young couple. Jim was chatting with the old woman. He was recognized by Serenity on the day Liberty moved out and said that he would do anything as long as he was paid. Thus, he did not panic when he saw Serenity now. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. He felt like he could finally live out in the open. ¡°Mr. York and Ms. Hunt. Jim took the initiative to greet them. Serenity returned his smile and asked, ¡°What is your name, mister? I forgot to ask for your name card that day. ¡± Jim darted a nce at Zachary and saw his boss¡¯s expression remained unchanged before he boldly replied, ¡°My name is Jim. ¡± Then, he fished out a small slip of paper from his pants pocket and handed it to Serenity, saying in embarrassment, ¡°I only realized that I ran out of name cards to hand out when I got home. I hadn¡¯t bothered to get extra copies printed either, so I just wrote my cell phone number on the paper. ¡± Serenity epted the note with Jim¡¯s phone number on it and said to the man beside her, ¡°Jim said he can do any job. I figured I could ask him to help me with any job I can¡¯t do myself in the future. ¡± She was exining it lest the jealous man had other thoughts. Zachary said in a low voice, ¡°Jim is quite reliable. You can ask him to help if you need any heavybor done. ¡± Jim smiled nervously. ¡°Yes yes yes, I can do anything as long as I¡¯m paid. Mr. York, are you going on a business trip?¡± Zachary hummed. ¡°In that case, I won¡¯t bother you guys anymore. ¡± Jim said goodbye to the couple, waved to Grandma May again, and walked away as if nothing happened. Zachary would only bring half of his security detail on business trips. Jim was not selected and was assigned to stay behind to protect Serenity. However, Jim was not regretful that he did not get to apany Zachary on the business trip. Compared. to his colleagues, he had a better chance of building rapport with Serenity. It was important to build a connection with Zachary, but was it more important than building it with Serenity? Zachary¡¯s growing affection for Serenity was clear. It could even be described as doting. ording to the rules of the men in the York family, a person could still be forgiven if they offended the male counterpart of the Yorks. However, if they offended their wives, all that awaited them was death. Thus, Jim would only get a promotion and a raise if he built connections with Serenity instead. The couple got into their respective cars, and Serenity drove away with Grandma May first. When her car was out of sight, Zachary¡¯s driver and bodyguard entourage slowly approached in their cars. Zachary¡¯s MPV had to be driven to thepany and parked there, so as to not rouse Serenity¡¯s suspicion. On the way to the office, Zachary called Sam, the butler in Wildridge Manor, and instructed him to send cleaners to Whitmore Mansion. Then, a few people would be arranged to stay there for a period of time to add to the liveliness. At the end, he said, ¡°Jim¡¯s bonus will be doubled in the future. ¡± Jim, who was sitting in the passenger seat, jerked his head to look at Zachary. He could not hide the smile on his face as he said repeatedly, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Zachary. ¡± The driver cast an envious look at Jim. The bonuses for the bodyguards around Zachary were astronomical to begin with and now that Jim¡¯s bonus would be doubled, it would without a doubt attract green¨Ceyed monsters. Sam said respectfully, ¡°Yes, sir. Will it be starting this month?¡± ¡°Yes, starting this month. ¡± Sam understood. Chapter 585 Chapter 585 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 585 After hanging up the phone, Zachary instructed Jim, ¡°Protect the missus while I¡¯m away during this period. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mr. Zachary. We¡¯ll protect the missus well. ¡± Serenity was skilled in the arts of self¨Cdefense, so it was easy peasy to protect her. Double the bonus! Jim was happy just thinking about it. This was the benefit of building connections with Serenity! ¡°If Serenity needs help or encounters difficulties, tell Nana. She¡¯ll arrange everything properly. Alternatively, you can tell Callum as well. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mr. Zachary. If the missus faces any problems, Old Mrs. York will definitely hear about it. ¡± Grandma May was seemingly omnipotent. Her grandsons could not hold a candle to her. Zachary thought of his nana¡¯s capability and did not speak again. What surprised him was that for the first time in a while, he saw Elisa standing at the entrance of the company again. She was leaning on her red sports car, watching his team slowly approaching. The driver remarked, ¡°Mr. Zachary, Ms. Stone is here again. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before instructing the driver, ¡°Stop the car in front of her. ¡± The driver and Jim were shocked. Although Elisa and Serenity became good friends, Zachary never treated Elisa well. The only person who Zachary treated somewhat well was Jasmine, since her friendship with Serenity was deeper. It was also Jasmine who opened a bookstore with Serenity to make money. The driver did as he was told. Elisa was still contemting whether to rush out to stop the car regardless of her safety when Zachary¡¯s Rolls¨CRoyce stopped in front of her. The car door opened, and Zachary walked out of the car. Even after not seeing him for some time, he was still extraordinarily handsome in her eyes. Elisa looked smitten for a moment before she reminded herself not to be infatuated anymore. He was already someone else¡¯s husband. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mr. York. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. I¡¯m not here to pester you today. ¡± Elisa spoke first. She stood up straight but had nowhere to put her hands, so she leaned back against the car again with her hands propping up her body. She looked at Zachary and said, ¡°You showing off your love made me very curious, so I came here shamelessly to ask you just which family your wife belongs to. ¡°Can you tell me so I know how I lost?¡± Zachary said in a low voice, ¡°Sorry, but I don¡¯t want to expose my wife¡¯s identity yet. You should know after the media¡¯s reaction yesterday. My wife likes a quiet and uneventful life. I don¡¯t want anyone disturbing her. ¡± Elisa nodded in understanding. ¡°That¡¯s true. The media is ridiculous. They¡¯re almost everywhere. ¡± Only someone like Zachary had the ability to turn the media crazy and not give them any answers. Elisa truly envied Zachary¡¯s wife. That woman must have saved the gxy in herst life to be so dearly treasured by Zachary in this life. Zachary did everything he could to protect her so she was able to lead the quiet and peaceful life she wanted while bearing the identity of Mrs. York. Even if the world spiraled into turmoil from the news, she would still be peaceful as always. Examples of how Zachary spoiled his wife were not exposed, but from the fact that he did his best to give his wife the life she wanted, it was clear that he really, truly loved his wife. ¡°Zachary, can I ask something? Is she better than me?¡± Zachary said calmly, ¡°In my eyes, she¡¯s better than you. ¡°¡± Elisa felt bitter, but she still smiled and said, ¡°I thought so. She must be better than me and more suitable for you. That¡¯s why you fell in love with her and protected her. She¡¯s a very lucky woman, and a person to be envied of and hated. ¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°Ms. Stone, you¡¯re not bad, but you¡¯re not my type. You can find a good man more suitable for you in the future. ¡± Chapter 586 Chapter 586 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 586 Elisa smiled and raised her hand to wipe away the tears from the corner of her eyes. She looked away and stared into the distance for a while before turning back. She then faced Zachary with a solemn expression, ¡°Zachary, after hearing those words from you, I think it¡¯s all worth it. My infatuation with you. over the years was not in vain. ¡± She graciously extended her hand toward Zachary, who mirrored her action in the same manner, and they shook hands. ¡°Zachary, I wish you and your wife a long life of happiness. ¡± ¡°Thank you, Ms. Stone. ¡± ¡°I hope I will have the honor of attending your wedding in the future. ¡± Zachary retracted his hand and said warmly, ¡°When my wife and I have chosen a date to hold a wedding. I¡¯ll definitely send an invitation to Mr. Stone and you. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting for your invitation, then. ¡± Elisa smiled. ¡°You must be a busy man. I won¡¯t take up more of your precious time than I already have. Goodbye, Zachary. ¡± She waved at him before turning back toward her sports car, and swiftly drove away from York. Corporation. ¡®Goodbye, the first man I¡¯ve loved in my life. ¡®I won¡¯te back here again. ¡°When my wounds are healed, I¡¯ll start anew as well. ¡± Zachary returned to the car, and the driver quickly resumed the drive. The driver thought that those two would argue again. He did not expect Elisa to send her blessings. Elisa went all out whether it was love or hatred, but she was also able to pick things up and let them go. Whether it was the driver, Zachary, or the bodyguards, there was a one¨Ceighty shift in their perception toward Elisa At least she did not continue to pester Zachary. Elisa had wanted to find Serenity, but she changed her mind while making her way there. She had to apany her mother to get the DNA test results, so she made a U¨Cturn at an intersection ahead and drove home to get her mother instead. It was already past nine in the morning by the time she arrived home. Audrey wanted to leave earlier, but Darrell said, ¡°It¡¯s still early. There¡¯s no need to rush. The results will be released either way. No one will take the report away. ¡± ¡°I just want to get the results sooner and find out if Serenity really is my niece. ¡± Audrey was held down on the sofa by her husband. She was not able to sit still even for a moment. Alice had not gone out either. Clive had told her to apany Audrey to the center to get the results. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Alice persuaded her mother¨Cinw, ¡°Mom, they informed you to get the results at noon. It¡¯s still too early now. There¡¯s no need to rush. Elisa also said she wanted to apany us to get the test results, but she¡¯s not back yet. ¡± Only then did Audrey notice that her darling daughter was not at home. She asked her daughter¨Cinw, ¡°Alice, where did Elisa go? I haven¡¯t seen her since I got up. ¡± Alice did not hide the truth and said honestly, ¡°Elisa went to York Corporation to find Mr. York. ¡± Audrey paused before saying, ¡°Has the girl not given up?¡± ¡°She already did, Mom. She went to say farewell to Mr. York. ¡± Audrey sighed. ¡°I hope she can really give up on him. ¡± Her daughter was in love with Zachary for several years. Alice said, ¡°She¡¯ll give up on him, Mom. She has her pride too. Since Mr. York announced that he¡¯s married, Elisa will definitely let go of her feelings for him. ¡± Chapter 587 Chapter 587 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 587 ¡°Yes, my Elisa has her pride. It¡¯s not like no one else wants to marry my daughter¡± Audrey still knew her daughter best. If Elisa said she would give up, then she would stay true to her words. The sound of a car was hearding from outside. Alice stood up and while walking out of the house, she said, ¡°That must be Elisa ¡± There was her sister¨Cinw in sight. Elisa got out of the car and walked toward her sister¨Cinw, showing a bright smile. ¡°Alice, Mom is still at home, right?¡± Alice¡¯s heart ached when she saw her sister¨Cinw smiling so radiantly. She would rather Elisa cry her heart out than smile like that. Heavens knew it only meant that the brighter Elisa smiled, the deeper the pain in her heart. She sighed. It was painful enough to fall in love with a man she should not fall in love with, and it was even more painful to know that the man had just gotten married. ¡°Mom is still at home. Elisa, are you okay?¡± ¡°Do I look like I¡¯m not okay? Don¡¯t worry, Alice. I¡¯m great. I just bade farewell to the past. ¡± Elisa spoke nonchntly, but she did not want to talk too much about Zachary. She affectionately hooked her sister¨Cinw¡¯s arm and said, ¡°Come on, let¡¯s get inside. ¡± Once Elisa came back, Audrey could no longer sit still. Thus, the family apanied her to the DNA testing center. Compared to Audrey¡¯s nervousness, Serenity was calm back in her store. She sat at the cashier¡¯s desk weaving crafts. She nced twice at Grandma May and Mrs. Lane, who were ying with Sonny, before saying to Jasmine, ¡°My husband went out on a business trip. Tell me if there are any events I can attend in the next few days. ¡± Her life had been pretty distressing recently. She needed to go out and have some fun with her best friend to relieve the pressure. She could bring along her sister and nephew as well. Jasmine smiled. ¡°It¡¯s just shopping and eating. What other events are suitable for you? I doubt you¡¯d be happy attending high society banquets. ¡°Elisa is heartbroken. Why don¡¯t we apany her for a drink?¡± Serenity immediately shook her head. ¡°Let¡¯s not drink. You know how my alcohol tolerance is. My sister won¡¯t let me drink anymore. ¡± Jasmine teased her, ¡°I thought you¡¯d dare let yourself go now that your husband is off on a business trip. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t make it sound as if I¡¯m afraid of my husband. ¡± However, she was actually afraid to let go for fear that Zachary woulde back, get jealous, fight with her, and start a cold war again. ¡°Let¡¯s go watch a movie tonight. ¡± Serenity proposed, ¡°The students are having their winter break soon, and our shop will have to close for the New Year¡¯s. We can take advantage of the holidays to rx and unwind. ¡± ¡°I thought you were going to spend the New Year holidays catching up on your orders?¡± ¡°It¡¯s important to earn money, but sometimes we ought to make space to put our feet up and enjoy the moment too. There are several new films showing now, and I saw many people showing off their movie ticket stubs on social media too. I haven¡¯t watched a movie in a long time. Let¡¯s go watch one tonight. ¡± Jasmine lowered her voice and asked, ¡°Doesn¡¯t your husband take you out for movies?¡± Serenity also lowered her voice and replied, ¡°He¡¯s so busy every day. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. He doesn¡¯t have the time. I also have too many things to do recently ¡± The main reason was that they had no feelings for each other in the past. They had been living under one roof, but there was barely any form ofmunication, let alone going on dates or watching movies. The two of them did not even hold hands on the streets. ¡°Mr. Bucham is always inviting me to the movies, but I decline. ¡± Serenity was shocked. ¡°You declined? You don¡¯t want to watch dramas anymore?¡± Jasmine was speechless. Chapter 588 Chapter 588 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 588 Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Elisa mentioned that Mr. Bucham is from a family that deals with intelligence. If you get together with him, you¡¯ll have first¨Chand ounts of all sorts of drama. You like it when it¡¯s lively, so I feel like he¡¯s born for you. You two are a great match. ¡± Jasmine was speechless. Was she getting a boyfriend to get married with or to gossip? ¡°You mentioned that your sister¡¯s ex¨C mother¨Cinw called you again?¡± Jasmine hurriedly changed the topic. She did not want her best friend to gossip about her. ¡°My sister divorced that scumbag and moved out, so they naturally couldn¡¯t wait to move in. However, they can only rent a house, stay in a hotel, or go back home now. With my knowledge of their family, they would definitely stay in the city for the New Year¡¯s instead of going home. ¡± The Brown family must have spread the word in their hometown that the family would be going to the city for New Year¡¯s. Thus, even if there was no house to live in, the family would rent a ce to stay. Serenity wished she could clone herself so her clone could be stationed with the Brown family to watch the show. They must have been shocked to see the house renovation smashed. ¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Yep. ¡± The Brown family, who Serenity wanted to watch, had gone to Wiltspoon Hospital to look for Old Mr. Hunt. Old Mrs. Hunt was recovering well from her surgery and would be discharged and go home to recuperate after a while. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. Olivia barged in with her daughter and son¨Cinw. Mr. Brown did not want toe, so he stayed at the hotel looking after his three grandchildren. More importantly, he was too embarrassed. ¡°Old Mr. Hunt. ¡± Olivia shouted as soon as she barged into the ward. When Old Mr. Hunt saw her charge into the room with her daughter and son¨Cinw, he frowned and wondered where his sons and grandsons went. There was no one to stop this crazy woman. ¡°My wife is still sick. Please keep your voice down. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt poured a cup of warm water for his wife and ced the cup on the bedside table while asking calmly, ¡°Are you here to visit my wife? Why did youe here empty¨Chanded? How old are you? Don¡¯t you know aboutmon courtesy?¡± Olivia stormed over and pointed at Old Mr. Hunt, gesticting and cursing. ¡°We¡¯re not inws anymore. Your granddaughter already divorced Hank. ¡°Hurry up and return the money!¡± Old Mr. Hunt pped away Olivia¡¯s hand that was pointing at him and said with a cold face, ¡°You¡¯re already in your fifties by now. Didn¡¯t your mother teach you not to point at people when you¡¯re talking to them? ¡°Youck family education, so your son must be no better. It¡¯s no wonder my granddaughter divorced your son. ¡± After scolding Olivia, Old Mr. Hunt asked with an innocent face, ¡°Return the money? What money?¡± ¡°Your son didn¡¯t give us a betrothal gift when he married my granddaughter. Now that they¡¯re divorced, even if you want to get back the betrothal gift, you shouldn¡¯t being to me. ¡± Chelsea said, ¡°My mom gave you sixty thousand to convince Liberty not to divorce. You took the money but didn¡¯t do the job, so shouldn¡¯t you return the money? Hurry up and give us back the money, or I¡¯ll call the police. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt retorted, ¡°Just because you said your mother gave me sixty thousand, does that mean it¡¯s true? Is there a record of the transaction? ¡°Did anyone see her give me the money? ¡°That day, your mother came to me and asked me to persuade Liberty not to divorce. I also don¡¯t want them to divorce, so I told Serenity to tell her sister not to divorce. However, Serenity refused to listen and even chased us out. ¡°I already did my best, but the two sisters didn¡¯t listen. I¡¯m only a grandfather to them. What else can I do?¡± Old Mr. Hunt refused to return the money. He would never return money that had entered his pocket! Chapter 589 Chapter 589 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 589 ¡°Old Mr. Hunt, you clearly received sixty thousand from me. I gave it to you in cash. That was my private. funds which I saved for a long time. You took the money and said you would convince Serenity, but your failed. My son still ended up divorcing Liberty. ¡°Please hurry up and return the money to me, or I¡¯ll call the police. ¡± When the old man refused to admit he took the money, Olivia was so angry that her face turned scarlet. . Old Mr. Hunt said with a cold face, ¡°If you want to call the police, then be my guest. I¡¯m not afraid. I already said that I didn¡¯t take your money, but so what if I did? Take it as making up for the betrothal gift that you failed to give us when your son married my granddaughter. ¡°You¡¯re having it easy by paying just tens of thousands for the betrothal gift. You have a daughter yourself too. When your daughter got married, were you willing to give your daughter away to your son¨Cinw¡¯s family without receiving a single penny in return?¡± Olivia said furiously, ¡°Betrothal gift? You never even raised Liberty! What right do you have to receive a betrothal gift? They¡¯re already divorced. I¡¯d be an idiot to give you a betrothal gift. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Hurry up and return the money!¡± ¡°I have no money. I only have my life. Take it if you dare. ¡± Old Mr. Hunt looked like he had nothing to fear, infuriating Olivia so much so that she wanted to march over and tear into him. Chelsea hurriedly pulled her mother back. ¡°Don¡¯t touch him, Mom. He¡¯s old. We¡¯ll be in trouble if he ends up on the floor. ¡± ¡°Oh, I feel so ufortable. I can¡¯t breathe. They¡¯re so noisy in here that it¡¯s affecting me. I¡¯m going to die¡­¡± On the hospital bed, Old Mrs. Hunt suddenly looked utterly ufortable, holding onto her chest and breathing heavily. Old Mr. Hunt immediately rang the bedside bell to notify the doctor and nurse toe over. He said viciously to Olivia and the others, ¡°If something happens to my wife because she¡¯s angry at you, you¡¯ll be responsible for her medical expenses in the future. ¡± ¡°She¡¯s clearly faking it. ¡± Chelsea pulled her mother back along with her husband toward the entrance of the ward as she cursed, ¡± If you don¡¯t pay back the money, we¡¯lle again. ¡± ¡°What money? There¡¯s no money? If you want money, go to Liberty and her sister instead. ¡± Olivia still wanted to scold them, but the doctor and nurse had arrived, so they withdrew. They were afraid that they would really be made responsible for the old woman¡¯s medical expenses if they stayed on. After leaving the hospital, Olivia continued to curse, ¡°That old fox. He clearly took my money but refused to admit it. I¡¯d rather my money be used to buy medicine and then a coffin for him to lie in. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re at fault too, Mom. Why did youe to them for help? It¡¯s not like you¡¯re unaware of the rtionship between Liberty and her family, but you still gave them money. How are we going to get back the money they¡¯ve pocketed?¡± ¡°I was just anxious and wanted to keep Liberty. I wanted to keep that one million. ¡± Olivia was in tears. What have I done to deserve this? When other people¡¯s sons divorce, the house, car, and savings still belong to them, but when my son did, everything had to be divided in half. ¡± George smoked a cigarette in annoyance. He said, ¡°Mom, we won¡¯t be able to get back the sixty thousand you gave to them anytime soon. Their family is outrageous. They have numbers on their side and Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt are getting on in years. That old woman can casually say she¡¯s notfortable and then pin the me on us. ¡± People like them were troublesome if provoked. Olivia wiped a tear and said hatefully, ¡°It¡¯s all Liberty¡¯s fault. She¡¯s so vicious. Let¡¯s go, Chelsea. We¡¯ll settle the score with Liberty. Hank knows whichpany she works for. We¡¯ll wait for her in front of herpany. ¡± When George heard they were going to look for Liberty, he said, ¡°You guys go ahead. I won¡¯t go. Liberty. and Hank are already divorced. What are you going to do with her even if you find her?¡± Liberty threatened Hank to divorce, shared their assets equally, and smashed the renovations. All of this told George that Liberty would not be merciful to the Brown family. Meddling with Liberty would only bring shame to themselves. ¡°You don¡¯t have to go. Mom and I will be able to set her straight. ¡± Chelsea felt that if she teamed up with her mother, they would be able to stand up to Liberty. 1 Thus, George took a cab back to the hotel by himself, Chelsea called her brother and found out that Liberty was working at Lewis & Co. She drove her mother straight to the office building, and stood guard by the entrance. Chapter 590 Chapter 590 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 590 Several luxury cars came from far, passed by the main entrance of Wiltspoon School, and stopped in front of Serenity¡¯s bookstore. Grandma May, who was chatting with Mr. Charles from next door, hurriedly turned away when she saw the luxury cars. She deliberately hung her head low, afraid that the people who got down from the cars would see her. ¡°Serenity, Serenity. ¡± When Elisa got out of the car, she shouted Serenity¡¯s name while jogging into the store. She did not notice the olddy sitting in front of the store next door. Darrell got out of the car, holding a crying Audrey, and followed their daughter into the store. Alice ordered the bodyguards to guard the entrance before she turned around and entered the store as well. Serenity was halfway through weaving an eagle with its wings spread when she heard Elisa¡¯s cry. She stopped her movements and looked up at Elisa. ¡°Elisa, you¡¯re here. Have you eaten? If you haven¡¯t¡­¡± Then, she saw Audrey, who was apanied by Darrell next to her. Seeing Audrey¡¯s face full of tears, Serenity understood. They had gotten the DNA test results. Looking at Audrey¡¯s expression, there were no questions needed to know that Audrey and her were blood rted. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Audrey quickly stepped forward and went around the cashier¡¯s desk. She wrapped Serenity in her arms and cried, ¡°I¡¯ve looked far and wide for you¡­¡± There was nothing else she could say. All she could do was hold Serenity and cry. Serenity wanted tofort her, but found herself unable to speak at the moment. ¡°My poor sister¡­¡± Audrey cried again when she thought of her sister who had passed away long ago. Serenity shed tears with her. Jasmine held Sonny and stood not far away with Mrs. Lane, watching the scene. Sonny looked confused as to what was going on. Elisa and Alice¡¯s eyes were also red¨Crimmed. Darrell went forward and pulled his wife away, softlyforting her, ¡°Don¡¯t cry. It¡¯s a good thing that you¡¯ve found your niece. We should be happy instead. Stop crying already. ¡± Audrey was helped to a chair by her husband. When she was again reminded of what happened to her sister and her two nieces, she pounded her chest in to express her heartache. ¡°I was toote. I found them toote. If I had found them earlier¡­¡± ¡°Mom,¡± Elisa quickly stopped her mother from hurting herself while Serenity reached out to press onto Audrey¡¯s hand. 1/2 With everyone consoling her, Audrey finally stopped crying. She held Serenity¡¯s hand tightly, as if afraid that her niece whom she went through so much to find would. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. disappear if she let go of her hand. Serenity¡¯s emotions had calmed down too. She asked, ¡°Did you get the test results?¡± ¡°It¡¯s here. ¡± Alice hurriedly took out the DNA test results from her bag. When they first got it and ascertained that the two people were rted by blood, Audrey had fainted on the spot. Chapter 591 Chapter 591 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 591 As Mr. Stone and his daughter were busy tending to Mrs. Stone, only then Alice remembered to bring. back the DNA report. Alice handed the DNA test results to Serenity so that thetter could have a look herself. After reading the oue, Serenity fell silent for a while before putting the paper on the table. ¡°You¡¯re my niece, Serenity. Call me Aunt Audrey. ¡± Although fate had separated her from her sister, it was sort of a constion for Mrs. Stone to have found two nieces in return. Holding Serenity¡¯s hand, Mrs. Stone asked the girl for a more intimate form of address. ¡°Where¡¯s Liberty and Sonny?¡± Her other niece was not forgotten. ¡°My sister won¡¯t be here for lunch. She¡¯ll be here once she gets off work at half¨Cpast five in the evening. ¡± Serenity exined while looking at Jasmine. With Jasmine carrying Sonny over, Serenity took her nephew from her best friend. ¡°Maram¡­¡± Mrs. Stone interrupted Serenity mid¨Csentence. ¡°It¡¯s Aunt Audrey to you, Seren. I¡¯ve been dreaming of finding you. Now that I¡¯ve found you, please don¡¯t be a stranger to me. ¡± After a brief silence, Serenityplied with the new form of address. With the DNA test results out, it was proven that she and Mrs. Stone were rted by blood. Mrs. Stone was her aunt. Talk about a dramatic plot twist. Mrs. Stone¡¯s eyes welled up at her new¨Cfound role as an aunt. Elisa said, ¡°Don¡¯t cry, Mom. Sonny¡¯s here. You¡¯ll scare Sonny if you start crying. ¡± Jasmine and Mrs. Lane poured everybody a ss of water and served fruits. Mrs. Stone wanted to hug Sonny, but Sonny rejected her and turned around to cling to Serenity by the nape of her neck. ¡°Sonny, I¡¯m your great¨Caunt. ¡± Getting up, Mrs. Stone tried to win Sonny over. ¡°Come, let me hold you, okay?¡± Sonny pped her hand away and cried, ¡°No! No! I want Ant Swer. ¡± Seeing that Sonny reacted strongly against it, Mrs. Stone had to drop the matter. Still, the thought of what Sonny went through made her blood boil. ¡°That family of scums will pay for what they did to Sonny!¡± Since her niece had divorced Hank and she had a familial rtionship with the Hunt sisters, Mrs. Stone. believed she should do something to do right by her departed sister. The notorious Hunt family was on her hit list too. After her sister died, the Hunts seized much of the insurance payment and upied the estate, kicking her nieces out. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. The family had done a lot to her nieces over the years. Mrs. Stone nned to settle the scores for each and everything they had done to Serenity and Liberty. ¡°Sonny has been doing better in thest few days. The bruises on his body have gone away. He¡¯d only let me and my sister hold him the first two days. ¡± He even refused Zachary. ¡°That was a nasty shock for a young boy, so of course, he¡¯s going to cry nonstop and refuse anyone else. It¡¯s normal. Give him time, and everything will get better. ¡± Although Mrs. Stone was not able to hold Sonny, she did not take it personally. She stroked Sonny¡¯s head as Serenity carried him. Sonny was quite receptive to the caress. ¡°Seren, I hope your sister didn¡¯t get the shorter end of the stick on the divorce settlement. Elisa said that you could seek her help for anything at all, but you never gave her a call. ¡± Mrs. Stone remarked with concern, nning to demand what her niece deserved from the Browns. Elisa jumped in and whined, ¡°That¡¯s right. I kept telling you toe to me for any help. I¡¯d give you all the help in the world, but you didn¡¯t even call me when you went to demolish the house. ¡± Chapter 592 Chapter 592 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 592 Elisa only discoveredter that she missed out on great fun. She took a dig at Jasmine and Serenity. Jasmine had mentioned and warned Serenity about including Elisa, but Serenity did not want to expose the young heiress to such crudeness. Sure, Elisa was born into privilege, but she was Elisa Stone, a well¨Cknown unreasonable and rude brat in Wiltspoon¡¯s higher society. No crudeness could scare her. In fact, Elisa would be the sh*t¨Cstirrer if people caught her at the wrong time. ¡°My sister got what she was owed. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. It was just the renovation costs that the Browns refused to return. So, my sister called me to bring some men and trashed the furnishings. ¡± Mrs. Stonemended the act. ¡°That¡¯s the way to do it. Why should the Browns have it easy?¡± She added regrettably, ¡°I¡¯d have brought a bunch of people and demanded the money back from the Browns as your family member had I known. ¡± It dawned on Serenity that Elisa got her personality from her mother. ¡°Seren,e home with us when you close the shopter. Have dinner with us. That reminds me, does your husband have time? Get him to join us too. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°My husband is away on business today. It¡¯d probably be some time before he returns. I¡¯ll visit you with him when hees back. ¡± ¡°Oh, he¡¯s away on business. I guess I¡¯ll have to wait until I get to meet him. ¡± Mrs. Stone was not bothered that she could not meet her niece¡¯s husband as her full attention was on her nieces. Now that she had found her nieces, Mrs. Stone had the girls¡® backs all the way. She needed to check out if Serenity¡¯s husband was worth spending the rest of her time with. ¡°So your sister gets off work at half¨Cpast five?¡± ¡°Yeah. ¡± Mrs. Stone looked at the time. ¡°Where is your sister working?¡± ¡°Lewis & Co. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± Mrs. Stone remarked, ¡°There¡¯s a lot of potential to grow in Lewis & Co. Duncan has a knack in business. He built thepany from the ground up without help from his family, and now he¡¯s worth billions. His brothers are not worth as much if they only count their inheritance from the family. ¡± Duncan made it out on his own, and Mrs. Stone had a great appreciation for young independent professionals. ¡°We can wait at Lewis & Co. for your sister to clock outter before heading to my ce for dinner. I¡¯ll call your cousins to join us too. ¡± Mrs. Stone then told her daughter¨Cinw, ¡°Alice, let Clive know for him to cancel his social dinner tonight ande home for dinner. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°That reminds me, Seren. This is your oldest cousin¡¯s wife, Alice Lafayette. ¡± slipped Mrs. Stone¡¯s mind to introduce her niece to the family. Elisa was older than Serenity by a year which made her the older cousin. Serenity greeted her newfound family. Mr. Stone, her uncle, was a gentle giant while Alice, her cousin¨Cinw, was a straight shooter like Elisa. It was no wonder Alice and Elisa hit it off, birds of a feather flocked together. Mrs. Stone went on to hold Serenity¡¯s hand, asking about her sister. Although Mrs. Stone believed her sister¡¯s adoptive parents were cruel to take four hundred thousand dors out of the insurance payment, she was not steamed up about it. No matter what, the family had raised her sister. The four hundred thousand dors was to end the rtionship between them and her sister on a good note ¡°Are your grandparents still staying in the house built by your parents?¡± Yes. They nned to pass the house down to one of my cousins after their passing. They said that Liberty and I don¡¯t have the rights to the house because we¡¯re women. ¡± Chapter 593 Chapter 593 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 593 This was the mindset of the older generation. They believed the inheritance should stay in the family by leaving them to the sons and grandsons as daughters would only grow up to marry into another family. For families without a direct descendant to bequeath the inheritance to, fellow townspeople would be eyeing the property. They would keep the wealth in the town. Many were unwilling to leave their hard¨Cearned assets to someone who did not carry the family name. Hence, they would try to bring a son into the family. ¡°Are you talking about John Hunt by chance?¡± John¡¯s name rang a bell as he was once a senior executive at one of the Stones¡® subsidiaries. John made a million dors annually. For John to earn a huge chunk of change from the Stones, to push around her nieces, and to take over her sister¡¯s property, Mrs. Stone could not say he left a good impression. She needed to get Clive to go hard on John so thetter would not be able to even make a living out of begging in the streets. ¡°That¡¯s right. My grandparents absolutely adore him since he¡¯s the most promising out of all the grandchildren. They even named him the adopted son of my parents so he has rights to my parents¡® assets. ¡°My sister and I n to take back our parents¡® home after New Year¡¯s. I¡¯d rather sell the ce than give it to them!¡± It would entail anotherwsuit. Although the New Year was around the corner, Serenity had not taken action yet due to her sister¡¯s recent divorce. The property left behind by her parents was built in the early 90s. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. The house itself was not worth a lot of money, but thend was. The residence was built on and of several hundred square yards. While her parents were alive, they boughtnd from others and added yards to their residentialnd. Mom once told her and Liberty that thend could be split in two for two houses to be built when they grew up and made it out on their own. That way, the sisters would stay close to help and take care of one another. ¡°That¡¯s bullsh*t! My sister¡¯s property should be inherited by her daughter, not her nephew. Don¡¯t worry, Seren. I¡¯ll help you take back your parents¡® home. ¡°Ah, do you have the title deed to the property?¡± ¡°All we have is and use permit, and it¡¯s with my sister. My sister was smart enough to steal thend use permit when we were kicked out of the house. ¡± Serenity was only ten back then, so that was the least of her problems. She was at a loss for losing her parents so suddenly. All she did was cry. Thank goodness her sister was there for her. Due to the trending news on Twitter, Mrs. Stone learned about the conflict between the sisters and the rest of the Hunts. Nevertheless, Mrs. Stone¡¯s heart still bled for the girls when Serenity talked about the past. A fifteen¨Cyear¨Cold and a ten¨Cyear¨Cold had no means to secure their parents¡® insurance payout and assets. against their greedy rtives. They were forced to go out into the world with only each other. Mrs. Stone found out from her daughter that Serenity married in a haste. Apparently, Serenity went down. that road to give her sister confidence and move out of her sister¡¯s ce. Others might not understand why Serenity did what she did, but Mrs. Stone could. The sisters only had each other for more than a decade, and as the older sister, Liberty was used to watching out for her little sister. Even though Serenity was all grown up and had the earning ability to rent a ce, Liberty did not feel comfortable about it. Liberty¡¯s mind could only be at ease if her sister stayed close by her side. The only way Liberty could get peace of mind was if her sister married someone who could take over Liberty¡¯s job. This was the real reason behind Serenity¡¯s sudden marriage. It would be hard to understand the reasoning behind Serenity¡¯s drastic measure to opt for marriage in order to move out of her sister¡¯s ce without getting into the bond the sisters had forged throughout the years. ¡°It makes things easier that you have proof in hand. ¡± Mrs. Stone patted Serenity¡¯s hand. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I will get justice for you. ¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey, my sister and I can get our parents¡® house back. ¡± Her grandparents did not have full rights to her parents¡® estate. In short, there was no way they could take over the entire property. At first, the sisters nned to wait until the grandparents were dead before taking back the house. It never urred to Serenity that her absurd rtives would try to start something. She should move the legal battle ahead then. Chapter 594 Chapter 594 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 594 I know you and your sister aren¡¯t pushovers, but I just want to do right by my sister. ¡± Serenity was without a word. The aunt and niece shared an afternoon of conversation. Mrs. Stone insisted on going with Serenity to pick Liberty up at Lewis & Co. at five o¡¯clock in the evening. Serenity let her be. Taking the wheel, Serenity drove Sonny, Mrs. Stone, and the others to Lewis & Co. Jasmine and Mrs. Lane did note along. Halfway on the road, Serenity¡¯s mind suddenly flew to Grandma May. She had not seen the olddy the whole afternoon. Serenity immediately gave Grandma May a call. She jumped straight to the question the moment the phone was picked up. ¡°Nana, where were you?¡± ¡°I was taking a stroll. Are you heading home? I¡¯ll grab a cab back then. ¡± Grandma May had been at Mr. Charles¡® shop the whole time. . She dared not show her face for fear Mrs. Stone might see her. ¡°Nana, the DNA test results for Mrs. Stone and me are out. She¡¯s my aunt. Aunt Audrey wants me and Liberty to have dinner at her ce, so I¡¯m taking Sonny with me to pick my sister up. You should head back with Mrs. Lane. ¡± ¡°Really? Congrattions on finding your aunt, Seren. ¡± Grandma May congratted Serenity and added, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about me and Cecilia. Callum will pick us up after work. Go on and spend more time at your aunt¡¯s ce. It took decades for your aunt to locate you. It must be hard on her. ¡°It¡¯s okay if you want to stay the night at your aunt¡¯s. Just let me know. ¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll let you know if I¡¯m staying over at my aunt¡¯s ce. ¡± After the call ended, Serenity mumbled to herself, ¡°No wonder I didn¡¯t see her the whole afternoon. She was off for some fun. ¡± Grandma May was acting more like a kid the older she got. Meanwhile, Liberty got a text message from her sister and learned that they were rted to Mrs. Stone. Besides, Serenity and Mrs. Stone were picking her up from work. Liberty was over the moon. She swiftly took care of the matters at hand. The moment it was time to clock out, she picked up her keys and stuffed her phone in her pockets before hurrying out of the office. People were giving her strange looks along the way, but Liberty was used to it. Since she was in a great mood today, she did not have time for her petty colleagues. She went to the motorbike parking section and found her ride. Liberty wheeled her e¨Cbike out of there, feeling the weight of the vehicle. It took quite an effort to push. What was going on? Once she got it out of the parking spot, she looked at the wheel and found it t. Oh, she had a t tire. It exined the heaviness when she was pushing the e¨Cbike. All was fine when she rode the bike to work. By the looks of the t, the tire was somehow punctured. It was a good thing her sister was picking her up from work. Libertyboriously pushed the e¨Cbike with a t tire out of the office building. ¡°Liberty!¡± An angry shout was heard.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Chapter 595 Chapter 595 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 595 Liberty did not have to look to know who it was. The voice was all too familiar to her. It was Chelsea, her former notorious sister¨Cinw. Mrs. Brown brought her daughter to Lewis & Co. , but Liberty had her lunch at the office cafeteria instead of having it at home. She took a power nap at her desk before continuing her work. All the while, she did. not leave the office. The mother and daughter were on a stakeout in front of the office building the whole afternoon. Tempers were ring, to say the least. Now that Liberty was finally out, Chelsea¡¯s fury had risen to an all¨Ctime high. Without regard to the building crowd, she yelled and caught the attention of many. The nosy passersby stopped to watch the drama unfold. Although Liberty was only a measly clerk in the finance department, she was personally hired by Mr. Lewis. That was how she became well¨Cknown in thepany. The director of the finance department was worried about losing his job as he found out that Liberty was once a finance director herself. Liberty¡¯s boss had been keeping an eye on her. The director of the finance department knew Liberty was one to watch out for as she was personally hired by the CEO. Liberty was a threat to him. Since he could not kick Liberty out of his department, the finance director resorted to petty tactics to give her trouble. The others in the finance department mentioned that the director had it out with Liberty. Fortunately, Liberty had experience working in the industry. She was able to avoid the setups by her direct superior. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Liberty stopped in her tracks. It was not like she had a choice. Her former mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw stood in her way, refusing to let her through. ¡°What are we here for? Ask yourself. What have you done? You trashed my brother¡¯s home. Pay for it! We¡¯ll sue you if you don¡¯t pay us the renovation cost,¡± Chelsea screamed. With more busybodies stopping by, she raised her voice about what Liberty did. ¡°You have an employee in yourpany. That¡¯s right. Her name is Liberty. She¡¯s my former sister¨Cinw. She¡¯s one cruel person. She didn¡¯t have to work a day in her life after marriage and threatened my brother to pay her over a million dors as a divorce settlement. ¡°Have you seen such a greedy and vicious woman in your life? ¡°One more thing, my brother bought the house before marriage. Once the divorce was finalized, she brought people to trash my brother¡¯s ce. Don¡¯t you think it was uncalled for? No one would want a wicked woman like her after my brother dumped her sorry ¡°ss. ¡± Liberty aloofly watched as her former sister¨Cinw twisted the facts around. She waited until Chelsea wast done yapping before coldly blurting, ¡°Yes, I didn¡¯t work after marriage. I didn¡¯t earn a single penny, but I had done a lot for the family. I gave Hank a son and took care of the family. Yet, he insisted on going halves with me, knowing I had no ie. ¡°He was only willing to pay half of our child¡¯s form milk but could buy a ne worth tens of thousands and a bag worth hundreds of thousands for his mistress. ¡°Should I stay with such a man? I have the right to half of my spouse¡¯s estate after the divorce. The settlement waswfully acquired. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ¡°So I¡¯m vicious? Well, you forced that nature out of me. Sure, Hank paid the downpayment of the house, but the renovations cost over four hundred thousand bucks was borne by me. I paid for it but you refused to pay me back the money. I¡¯d rather demolish the furnishings than hand them to you. Sue me? Go ahead. I dare you. ¡± Everybody was speechless. They believed Chelsea was not exactly in the right when she started talking. Women should not be free nannies to their inws when they married into the family. There was nothing wrong with splittingmon assets during a divorce. Although they wanted to get knee¨Cdeep in Liberty¡¯s affairs, they took Liberty¡¯s side after hearing her side. of the story. Liberty was not wrong to trash the furnishings since she paid for the renovation and got nothing in return. Why should the ex¨Chusband enjoy something she paid for? ¡°Look at the vile woman¡­¡± ¡°I think you¡¯re the vile person here. Are you even a woman? Are you not going to fight for anything if you and your husband separate?¡± Prev Next Chapter 596 Chapter 596 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 596 Someone stood up to Chelsea. ¡°That¡¯s right. You¡¯re a woman. How can you say that about Liberty? Liberty did the right thing. We¡¯re behind you, Liberty!¡± ¡°With a sister¨Cinw like that, I¡¯d divorce and stay away from the family even if my man didn¡¯t cheat on me. ¡± Chelsea grimaced in the face of public criticism. She believed Liberty humiliated her. Suddenly, Chelsea pushed the e¨Cbike that Liberty was holding onto. Liberty had a hard time wheeling the e¨Cbike as it had a t tire. Chelsea¡¯s sudden push caused Liberty to topple over together with the e¨Cbike. ¡°Give us back the money. Your grandfather took the money from my mom and denied taking it. You¡¯re responsible for your grandfather¡¯s debt. Give the money back to my mom. ¡± Still not feeling satisfied after the push, Chelsea went on to swing her handbag at Liberty. It did not stop there as she also made use of her feet to kick Liberty. Ditching the e¨Cbike, Liberty stumbled onto her feet and snatched the purse from Chelsea before smacking Chelsea with it. She had so much hate and resentment built up for Chelsea. Thinking she had nothing to do with the Browns after the divorce, Liberty wanted to leave the disgusting Browns behind her and pave a way forward for herself. However, Chelsea pushed too far and stirred up trouble. Chelsea¡¯s meanness was no excuse to turn the facts on Liberty. Both of them had a catfight before, and Chelsea lost to Liberty. Now that the pair was at it again, Mrs. Brown was going to help her daughter. The mother and daughter teamed up to attack Liberty. ¡°Call the cops! Someone, call the cops!¡± Someone shouted. ¡°Security, go on and pull them apart. These two women are causing a ruckus in ourpany. ¡± Someone urged the security guards to intervene. The security guards jumped in to try and stop the fight. The mother and daughter acted like mad dogs, biting at anyone who came in their way, and the intervening security guards got the worst of it. A security guard had just pulled Liberty away when Chelsea gave Liberty a kick. Liberty fell to the ground together with the security who was pulling her away. In fact, shended on top of him. The security guard drew a hitched breath. Her weight was crushing him! A few women came forward to help Liberty up. Shaking them off, Liberty pounced on Chelsea like a furious lioness. The pair were all over each other bearing ws. ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± Duncan¡¯s eyes went straight to his employees huddled at the front door when he stepped out of the office building. He walked over right away. Three women engaging in a fight was thest thing he would expect. By the time he yelled, Liberty had pinned Chelsea to the ground and pinched her hard. Chelsea shrieked in agony. Mrs. Brown pulled, tugged, and hit Liberty, attempting to rescue her daughter. Duncan tookrge strides ahead and managed to shove Mrs. Brown to the side. He then stopped Liberty from torturing Chelsea by pulling her away from thetter. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Prev Next Chapter 597 Chapter 597 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 597 ck in the face, Duncan asked, ¡°What¡¯s going on here?¡± Chelsea got up from the ground and tried to charge at Liberty, but Duncan pushed heraway. It took a few steps before Chelsea could steady her bnce. Chelsea looked up and saw a towering man with a scowl standing by Liberty. The scar on the man¡¯s face was terrifying. She might have nightmares if she stared at the scar long enough. Shaking in her boots, Chelsea lost the will to pounce on Liberty. Mrs. Brown hurried to her daughter¡¯s side. The mother and daughter were a hot mess, but so was Liberty. The few security guards and female employees who tried intervening in the fight looked disheveled. It never crossed their minds that the fight between two parties involving three women could get so wild. It was impossible to tear them apart. ¡°Who are you?¡± After catching her breath, Chelsea questioned Duncan. ¡°I¡¯m the boss of thispany, and who are you? Who are you toe to my ce of business and kick my employee around?¡± Duncan turned his head to take in the state Liberty was in. Liberty¡¯s hair was a mess and she was covered in dirt. She got it from the tussle she had with Chelsea on the ground. There were scratch marks on the back of her hands, neck, and face. Some were bleeding. ¡°Call the cops,¡± Duncan instructed the secretary who came with him. ¡°Mr. Lewis, the cops are on their way. ¡± Hearing that Duncan was the boss of thepany, the mother and daughter did not know if they had a leg to stand on. Nevertheless, Chelsea stubbornly said, ¡°Are you Liberty¡¯s boss? Good. I need to voice something out, and you can be the judge of it. Liberty¡¯s grandfather extorted sixty thousand dors from my mom and refused to return the money. Liberty should pay us back for that. ¡°We can forget about the divorce settlement, but why did she have to trash the house my brother bought before marriage?¡± Furrowing his brows, Duncan replied, ¡°You can involvew enforcement if you can¡¯t get back the money Liberty¡¯s grandfather extorted. What does it have to do with Liberty? Your should know about the situation between Liberty and her rtives. It was online for everybody to see. I don¡¯t read viral news online, but even I knew about it. ¡°So, no. Liberty shouldn¡¯t pay you back for that because it has nothing to do with her. ¡± Duncan refuted Chelsea before throwing a question to Liberty. ¡°Did you trash their home furnishings?¡± Liberty bitterly uttered, ¡°I paid for the renovation cost with the savings I got before the wedding. I poured over four hundred thousand dors into the house, but I got nothing out. of the property, not even a refund on the renovation cost. I demolished the ce since they paid nothing for it. ¡± Duncan nodded his head. ¡°You weren¡¯t wrong to do so. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡± Darting a callous nce at the mother and daughter, Duncan said in a t tone, ¡°The nerve of you two. You¡¯re the ones at fault. Yet, you came here to kick up a fuss and fight in front of my office. Do you have no respect for my workce?¡± He then turned to the security guards. ¡°Don¡¯t hold back the next time theye here to pick a fight. Give them a good beating and send them to jail. I want to sue them for public disruption and physical abuse of my employee. ¡°Liberty, get your injuries checked out in the hospital, so you can sue them for aggravated assault. They should pay for this!¡± The mother and daughter were at a loss. Mrs. Brown remarked, ¡°She hit us too. Look at what she did to my daughter. She crushed my daughter with her fats and elephantine weight. ¡± ¡°They started it. Liberty was only acting out of self¨Cdefense. ¡± ¡°Who are you to say that we started it? You¡¯re her colleagues. You¡¯re twisting the facts to help her!¡± Chelsea refused to admit that she pulled the first punch. Duncan coldly chimed in, ¡°Stop bickering. I have a few security cameras with 360¨Cdegree views installed at the entrance. We can check the surveince tapes on who started it when the cops arrive. ¡± The mother and daughter were lost for words. Mrs. Brown whispered to her daughter, ¡°Let¡¯s make a run for it, Chelsea. ¡± Afraid to be arrested by the cops, Chelsea agreed to her mother¡¯s suggestion. ¡°Okay. ¡± Chapter 598 Chapter 598 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 598 The Browns pair tried to flee. s, the cops arrived. ¡°Stop them!¡± Seeing that the mother and daughter were going to make a run for it, Duncanmanded the people to swoop in on them. ¡°Mr. Lewis, did you call the cops? What happened here? There seems to be amotion. ¡± The cops recognized Duncan. It was mainly because Duncan was a familiar face among the police force but not for al good reason. After turning over a new leaf, Duncan took an honest path and went into business. He grew Lewis & Co. into one of the major corporations in Wiltspoon in the span of a few years and had a worth of billions. Everybody around here knew who Duncan was. Well, it would be more urate to say that everybody doing business in Wiltspoon knew Duncan. ¡°They came here to beat up my employee. Look at what they did to her. ¡± Duncan pulled Liberty out from the crowd and showed the train wreck Liberty was. The cops were speechless. A catfight! Their gaze shifted from Liberty to the mother and daughter. Mrs. Brown did not suffer many injuries. Liberty simply pushed her aside and left her out of the fight due to Mrs. Brown¡¯s old age. Liberty unleashed all her anger on Chelsea, so thetter had it worse. It was in to see who won the catfight. Nevertheless, it did not matter to the cops who triumphed. All that mattered was who was in the right. ¡°Officer, this is a family matter. She¡¯s my sister¨Cinw. We butted heads because of a household affair,¡± Chelsea quickly exined. She would not be able to keep her job if word got out that she was arrested. Although she had been having a hard time at work, Chelsea cared about her job. She did. not want to lose it. ¡°I¡¯m her mother¨Cinw. It¡¯s just a family dispute. We just got into a tiny issue and got a little physical. Officer, please believe us. Mrs. Brown was frightened, afraid that the cops might take them away. She did not want to spend the New Year¡¯s locked up in a cell. She would be humiliated if her family found out about it. ¡°I¡¯m divorced. They are not rted to me in any way. ¡± Liberty stated aloofly, bringing up the reason for the dispute. There were many eyewitnesses and surveince footage. After checking the security tape and taking testimonies, the cops drew up their own conclusions that the mother and daughter were cruel. It gave them a new perspective about human nature. The mother and daughter had the audacity to make trouble at the woman¡¯s workce after the woman no longer had anything to do with the family. They lost tens of thousands and put the responsibility on an ex¨Cfamily member. The sister¨Cinw was something else. C0ntent ? 2024 (N/?)velDrama.Org. She could twist the facts around. The woman who was hit should have divorced the man sooner. She should have separated from the man early on so she could get away from her notorious mother¨C inw and sister¨Cinw. A few cars drew near and could not get close to the office building as there was a crowd at the entrance. The cars had to be parked afar. They were the vehicles of Serenity, Mrs. Stone, and the others. Seeing that there was a police car parked out front, Serenity had a bad feeling about it. She carried Sonny and hurried over there. ¡°What¡¯s going on? There¡¯s a police car. ¡± Furrowing his brows, Mr. Stone did not want to join the crowd, but his wife and daughter¨Cin-w went along with Serenity. He brought along his security details to escort his wife and daughter¨Cinw to squeeze into the crowd. Chapter 599 Chapter 599 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 599 The group had only elbowed their way into the crowd when Serenity cried, ¡°Liberty. ¡± Sonny called for her mother. It was not hard to take stock of the situation when Serenity saw Chelsea and her mom as well as the disheveled state her sister was in. Boy, she was riled up. Putting Sonny in her sister¡¯s arms, Serenity rolled up her sleeve and was ready to get into a fight. ¡°Seren. ¡± Mrs. Stone worked fast and swiftly stopped Serenity from trying to stick up for her sister. Seren, leave it to the cops to handle this. ¡± The cops had been called. It would not look good on Serenity to fight in front of the cops. ¡°Mr. Stone. Mrs. Stone. ¡± Duncan was surprised to see the Stones. Out of respect, he approached them and said. hello. Mr. and Mrs. Stone exchanged greetings with Duncan. Mrs. Stone asked, ¡°What¡¯s going on here, Mr. Lewis?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Let the cops take their statements at the station, Mrs. Stone. ¡± He then said to the cops, ¡°Officer, my employee has suffered enough. Her former inws came here to stir trouble even though she¡¯s separated from her husband. It¡¯s clear that she was often abused before the divorce. ¡°Please get justice for my employee. ¡± The cops knew that Duncan would not consider a reconciliation. Hence, they brought both parties to the station. Duncan and the Stone family tagged along. Having gotten the details of the fight while driving her sister to the station, Serenity ran her mouth. ¡°That family is a piece of trash. I would¡¯ve beaten them to a pulp if I had arrived sooner. ¡°Don¡¯t ept their apology, Liberty. Let the cops hold them in custody. ¡± Liberty held her son tightly and answered, ¡°I won¡¯t ept their apology. They went too far this time! They demanded I pay the money that Granddad extorted from them. ¡± Serenity exined, ¡°Your former mother¨Cinw is a moron. I can¡¯t believe she went to look for Granddad so he could talk you out of getting a divorce. Only that family would ask for money from your former mother¨Cinw. ¡°After you and Hank divorced, your former mother¨Cinw must have felt that her money had gone to waste, so she went to tear one into Granddad. The old b*stard wouldn¡¯t lose a screaming match. They probably think you were a pushover and tried their luck with you. ¡± Liberty replied, ¡°I kind of knew they would give me hell after the divorce. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. That¡¯s why I rented a ce and kept the address from them, I also blocked their numbers. It never urred to me that they would wait for me at my office building. I bet Hank told them. ¡± Only Hank knew that she was working at Lewis & Co. ¡°They will tone down their cocky attitude when they¡¯ve experienced some jail time. I wished the whole family could be locked up behind bars,¡± Serenity uttered resentfully. The sisters did not want to push anybody around, but it did not mean they were pushovers. Although Liberty and Hank were married, and the assets were split evenly, Liberty would still be seeing Hank¡¯s family as they had Sonny between them. There was no need to turn into enemies and cause amotion. The Browns believed that Liberty¡¯s rtives could have done more to talk Liberty out of the divorce. They believed Liberty would pay up to stop all the fuss. The group arrived at the station ten minutester. Chelsea and her mother were terrified. They immediately called Hank and Mr. Brown while on their way, requesting their presence at the station. The mother and daughter kept apologizing to Liberty in the station, begging Liberty not to press charges. Mrs. Brown even brought Sonny into the picture. ¡°Liberty, Chelsea and I were wrong. No matter what, I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s grandmother. Please forgive us for Sonny¡¯s sake. I promise we won¡¯t mess with you again. ¡± She then tugged on her daughter, hinting at Chelsea to apologize to Liberty once more. Chapter 600 Chapter 600 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 600 Mrs. Stone snapped, ¡°Do you think an apology would cut it after you beat my niece up? We don¡¯t ept your apology. You¡¯ve pushed one too far. ¡± She then told the police officers. ¡°We won¡¯t settle with an apology. Do what you need to do, officers. But I thinkpensation should be in order. ¡± The Browns¡® mother and daughter were detained, fined, and ordered to pay Liberty¡¯s medical bills and emotional distress. Since they beat Liberty up and insulted her in public, Liberty could im emotional distress due to reputation loss. Hearing that Liberty was Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece, Duncan looked at Mrs. Stone in surprise. Mrs. Brown asked Mrs. Stone nkly, ¡°Are you Liberty¡¯s aunt? When did youe into the picture?¡± Liberty was not rted to her mom¡¯s side of the family. The family had not been in touch with Liberty and her sister for thest fifteen years. Serenity was the only family who attended Liberty¡¯s wedding. Their extended families from both their parents¡® sides did not turn up. The Hunts had demanded family support when Liberty was getting married. Liberty stopped the Browns from giving the Hunts a penny. Thereafter, Liberty did not keep in touch with the Hunts either. The Browns¡® mother and daughter thought nothing of Liberty since thetter had no one to lean on except her sister. Now that a seemingly wealthydy popped out of nowhere and imed to be Liberty¡¯s aunt, Mrs. Brown had to ask and get to the bottom of her rtionship with Liberty. Why did Liberty not mention it before? Mrs. Brown seemed to recall that Liberty¡¯s maternal side of the family was poor. Mrs. Stone looked askance at Mrs. Brown before holding Liberty¡¯s hand and heartbrokenly ran her fingers along the scratch marks on Liberty¡¯s face. Feeling bad, she said, ¡°We got the results back for the DNA test, Liberty. We¡¯re family. ¡°You are my sister¡¯s daughters, so that makes me your aunt. ¡°Do you think an apology would excuse you from beating up my niece?¡± Mrs. Stone said as she stared the mother and daughter down. ¡°Once Liberty does a medical check and has enough proof to file awsuit, I¡¯ll sue your sorry *sses and put you behind bars!¡± ¡°You found your sister, Mrs. Stone?!¡± Duncan was blown away by the news. He nced at Serenity. Did Zachary know that his wife was the niece of Mrs. Stone? Elisa once pined for Zachary¡¯s love, plus York Corporation was at odds with the Stone Group. Now that Serenity turned out to be Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece¡­ How did Zachary fit into the equation? ¡°Thank God I finally located my sister. Unfortunately, she passed away fifteen years ago and was survived by two daughters ¨C Serenity and Liberty. I did a DNA test with Serenity, and the results showed we¡¯re rted by blood. ¡°I came to pick my niece up from work to have dinner at my ce, but this happened¡­ Mr. Lewis, thank you for sticking up for my niece. ¡± Mrs. Stone was pleased with the way Duncan handled the matter. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. She had a good opinion of Duncan in the first ce, but now she held him in high regard. Mrs. Brown and her daughter exchanged nces. Chelsea stuttered a question at Mrs. Stone. ¡°Are you really Liberty¡¯s aunt? I mean, are you really her family? You¡¯re¡­¡± So, it turned out that Liberty and her sister had an aunt. The aunt appeared to be quite well¨Coff. ¡°I¡¯m Liberty¡¯s aunt, biologically speaking. Oh, I should introduce myself to my niece¡¯s former inws. I¡¯m Mrs. Stone. You might not have heard about me, but does the Stone. Group ring a bell? ¡°That¡¯s my family business. Clive is my son. ¡± Shocked, Mrs. Brown fell off the chair and onto the ground. Chapter 601 Chapter 601 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei ¡°Mom. ¡± Hank entered the station, only to find her mother falling off the chair. Taking quick paces, he went up to pick his mother up. However, her mother could not stand still and was weak. in her knees. ¡°What happened to you, Mom?¡± Hank picked the chair up and helped his mother to sit down. His mother stared at Liberty with aplicated look on her face. Hank took a nce at her sister and found her with her jaw dropped while color drained from her face. ¡°Are you alright, Mrs. Brown?¡± Having tagged along Hank, Jessica asked Mrs. Brown with concern. She then turned her attention to Liberty with the intention to rip one into her. Even if Liberty was divorced, she should not have scared her former mother-inw. Nevertheless, Jessica was taken aback by Elisa¡¯s presence. Jessica thought her eyes were ying tricks on her. Mrs. Stone and the others were not public figures, but Elisa was famous and went viral for courting Zachary. Without a doubt, Jessica knew who she was. At the time, she was envious of Elisa¡¯s entitlement to go after Zachary. ¡°Is that you, Ms. Stone?¡± Jessica asked. Elisa lifted her chin high. ¡°Who are you?¡± ¡°It¡¯s really you, Ms. Stone. I¡¯m Jessica Yates, the secretary to the manager of Waltham Electronics. ¡± Jessica excitedly whipped out her business card and handed one to Elisa. Without putting her hand out, Elisa uttered in disdain, ¡°You¡¯re the homewrecker who destroyed Liberty¡¯s marriage. Don¡¯t give me any business cards because I only ept them from decent human beings, not floozies. ¡± Jessica was speechless. Her cheeks burned with shades of red. Embarrassed, Jessica withdrew her arm. Although his mother and sister were not talking, Hank knew from Liberty and his sister¡¯s bruises that they had a fight. Since his mother and sister had probably started it, Hank immediately apologized to Liberty. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Liberty. I apologize on my mother and sister¡¯s behalf no matter what they did. I¡¯m sorry. I¡¯ll tell them off and stop them from ever bothering you. ¡°Please, for Sonny¡¯s sake, can you overlook this once? I¡¯ll meet your demands, whatever they may be. ¡± Afraid that his mother and sister would end up in jail, Hank took the initiative to apologize and was open to hearing Liberty¡¯s demands. The police officers believed that it was best to have family disputes resolved. ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Mrs. Brown fell to the ground, but this time, on her knees. ¡°I had no conscience. I was wrong, Liberty. I deserve to die. Please forgive me. I won¡¯t give you trouble anymore. I¡¯m begging you. Please find it in your heart to forgive Chelsea and I. ¡± If the kneeling was not enough, Mrs. Brown even bowed earnestly at Liberty. Carrying her son, Liberty turned away to refuse the gesture. ¡°I was wrong, Liberty. I was wrong. I deserve to die.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡± Mrs. Brown raised her arm and pped herself. ¡°Mom. ¡± Hank immediately stopped his mother. Snapping out of her shock, Chelsea got on her knees together with her mom and pleaded, ¡± It was my fault, Liberty. I shouldn¡¯t have twisted the facts and hit you. Please forgive me. ¡°We¡¯ve known each other for more than a decade, and I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s aunt. Please forgive us. It¡¯s not good for Sonny if we were locked behind bars. Sonny would have a grandmother and aunt with a criminal record. ¡± Chapter 602 Chapter 602 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 602 Hank had only pulled his mother up when his sister went weak at the knees once more. Hank was in a dilemma as he had to hold his sister up too. He told them not to mess with Liberty, but his family refused to listen and went against his wishes anyway. Hank simply could not get a moment of peace. Hank had been taking a lot of heat at the office, and work had been hanging over his head. His boss did not look too pleased when Hank ditched work toe here. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. He believed that at this rate, his family would cost him the over one million bucks he gave to Liberty to keep his job. Likely spooked by the drama, Sonny clung to his mother¡¯s neck without staring at his grandmother and aunt. Duncan happened to stand in his line of vision. As Duncan stood behind Liberty, Sonny¡¯s eyes met Duncan with his head resting over his mother¡¯s shoulder. Sonny left quite an impression on Duncan. Although Duncan was a crude burly man, he loved children. The boy was as cute as a button. Duncan reached out to stroke Sonny¡¯s head, but thetter cried in fear, ¡°Mommy! Mommy!¡± While settling her son down, Liberty noticed Duncan¡¯s outreached arm awkwardly frozen midair. ¡°I¨CI thought your son was adorable, so I wanted to stroke him. He seems scared of me,¡± Duncan exined while awkwardly withdrawing his arm. Liberty soothed her son. ¡°This is Mr. Lewis, Sonny. He¡¯s not a bad man. Don¡¯t be scared. ¡± Sonny could not shake the fear. To shy away from Duncan, Sonny put his hands out and asked anxiously for Serenity, ¡°Ant Swer, huggies! Ant Swer, huggies!¡± Serenity took him over. Feeling sorry, Liberty said to Duncan, ¡°Sonny had gotten a nasty shock before, Mr. Lewis. He¡¯s scared of strangers now. ¡± Duncan was not going to be hung up about it with a child. ¡°It¡¯s okay. I did scare your son after all. ¡± The little guy was afraid of him thest few times they met too. Mr. Brown and George made it to the station. The Browns dished out all kinds of apologies and promises. They were willing to pay for the damages in hopes Liberty would let go of the matter. With the police mediating and helping to reach a reconciliation, Liberty agreed to let the matter slide in the end. Nevertheless, she requested Mrs. Brown and her daughter to put their promise in writing, apologize, and pay for Liberty¡¯s medical bills and emotional distress. Liberty added that thepensation had toe out of the mother and daughter¡¯s pockets. Hank was not allowed to pay on behalf of his mother. The mother and daughter would only feel the pain if it was their money. Since Liberty made the call, and the Browns were family to Sonny, the Stones and Serenity did not give their two cents. After leaving the station, Liberty apologetically said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°I can¡¯t go to your ce looking like this, Aunt Audrey. I¡¯m going to take Sonny home. ¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey, I¡¯ll drive my sister home. ¡± With all that had happened, Serenity was not in the mood to have dinner at the Stones¡® ce. Mrs. Stone was understanding. ¡°Okay. You should head back. It¡¯s Friday tomorrow. I¡¯ll pick you up on the weekend. You can stay over at my ce. ¡± The sisters did not decline Mrs. Stone¡¯s invitation. Once the Stones and the Hunt sisters were gore, Mrs. Brown emerged from the police with her son¡¯s assistance. ¡°Mom, Chelsea, stop giving Liberty a hard time. We¡¯re divorced. She and I have nothing to do with each other anymore. Although we¡¯re not happy with what she did, we were in the wrong, to begin with. ¡°Can¡¯t you leave me in peace? I¡¯ve been up to my neck in work, but you won¡¯t let me catch a breath. ¡± Holding her son¡¯s hands tightly, Mrs. Brown uttered hastily, ¡°Hank, you shouldn¡¯t have divorced! You shouldn¡¯t have! Liberty has an aunt whose family business is the Stone Group. Win her heart back and remarry her!¡± Hank and Jessica were at a loss for words. Chapter 603 Chapter 603 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 603 Serenity left her sister¡¯s rented ce and arrived home at half¨Cpast ten at night. She opened the door to the pitch¨Cdark house. Was Nana not at home? Was she asleep? Serenity stepped into the house and turned on the light. She then closed and locked the door behind her. After much thought, she opened the door and grabbed a pair of Zachary¡¯s loafers to put at the front door. It was to show others that there was a man in the house. It was a safety measure. ¡°You¡¯re back, Ms. Hunt.¡± Hearing the noise, Mrs. Lane came out of her bedroom. ¡°Yeah.¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Is Nana asleep?¡± ¡°Old Mrs. York went back. Your brother¨Cinw picked her up. She thought you wouldn¡¯t be home tonight, so she told me to inform you when you return tomorrow.¡± Serenity was surprised. ¡°Nana went home?¡± Mrs. Lane replied, ¡°Old Mrs. York said she moved in with you because she got into a fight with your husband. Now that they made up, she moved back to her house.¡± She believed Old Mrs. York was afraid to be seen by the Stones, so the olddy brought forward the n to move back to her ce. The missus would be hanging around the Stones a lot since it was confirmed that she was the niece of Mrs. Stone. Old Mrs. York would be staying away from the Stones until Mr. Zachary confessed the truth to the missus. That was why Old Mrs. York had to flee. ¡°Oh,¡± Serenity answered. She was under the impression that Nana had great fun living with her. It never urred to Serenity that Nana would move back to her house so soon. ¡°Ms. Hunt, why didn¡¯t you spend the night at your aunt¡¯s ce?¡± Serenity drew close and took a seat on the sofa before replying, ¡°We didn¡¯t go through with dinner. My sister¡¯s former mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw were at it again. We all ended up at the police station, so we canceled dinner. We¡¯ll go to my aunt¡¯s over the weekend.¡± Mrs. Lane asked with concern, ¡°Is your sister okay? Why wouldn¡¯t the Browns just let your 112 sister be? She has separated from them.¡± ¡°They couldn¡¯t stand getting nothing after my sister trashed the house. They thought they could bully my sister just because they were mean.¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°That family is the most pretentious family I¡¯ve ever seen. Women need to know their partner¡¯s family before walking down the aisle.¡± Women needed to know what they were getting into, especially when it came to families like the Browns. The Browns hid their ugly nature for years before showing their true colors. H Mrs. Lane poured Serenity a ss of water before sitting opposite Serenity. She said, Human emotions are fleeting. They can fall in and out of love easily. Your sister doesn¡¯t have her head in the clouds and is a decisive woman. She didn¡¯t cling onto the guy and chose to divorce. ¡°Even so, it was a messy divorce.¡± Leaning back against the sofa, Serenity asked, ¡°Mrs. Lane, you have years under your belt. You must have seen it all. What do you think about my husband? Will he end up like Hank? He¡¯s good to me now, but Hank was good to my sister back then too. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°And I¡¯m talking real good. Hank would give his heart to my sister, but now¡­ You¡¯re right. Human emotions are fleeting. I wonder if my husband¡¯s feelings for me will ever change. I won¡¯t bother to argue and will go straight to divorce if he cheats on me like Hank did. I¡¯d rather give him to the other woman.¡± She believed her man would be tainted if he was touched by another person. She believed her man would be tainted too if he touched another person. Serenity would not fight and would readily escape the marriage the moment Zachary had an affair. Chapter 604 Chapter 604 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 604 Mrs. Lane stood up for her boss. ¡°Ms. Hunt, I haven¡¯t been working with you for long, but I¡¯m a good judge of character. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Mr. York and your former brother¨Cinw are not the same. from type of people. Mr. York has a strong sense of responsibility. He won¡¯t shrink away his duty to care for you, his wife. ¡°The way I see it, Mr. York doesn¡¯t know how to talk to women and doesn¡¯t like it when young women get close to him. He rarely talks to Ms. Sox. He keeps his distance but acknowledges her presence. He¡¯s a brilliant man, but he¡¯s also the kind that won¡¯t look at another woman. Ms. Hunt, don¡¯t be scared because of your sister¡¯s failed marriage. ¡°Love is beautiful, and there are happy endings to marriages. Not everyone¡¯s marriage is like your sister¡¯s . I was a nanny to Mr. York¡¯s youngest cousin for many years. They are a good family. ¡°Mr. York¡¯s parents, uncles, and aunts aremitted to their rtionship and marriage. The men in the house are responsible and loyal to their wives. ¡°Mr. York is exposed to this sort of environment. Despite the many broken marriages happening around, he would still bemitted to his. You need tomunicate with him if you ever have a disagreement with him or if you find something he¡¯s hiding from you. Put yourself in his shoes. There¡¯s always a reason for people¡¯s actions.¡± With her mind harking back to Zachary¡¯s prideful personality, Serenity realized Zachary was a lot more reliable than Hank. Besides, Zachary was by her side through thick and thin before they even had feelings for each other. It showed Zachary¡¯s sense of responsibility more than Hank¡¯s. She said, ¡°Our marriage willst so long as Zachary doesn¡¯t do anything to betray me. It can only mean he doesn¡¯t trust me enough if he keeps things from me. I will be angry, but I¡¯ll try to understand and be better so he has full confidence in me. That way, he wouldmunicate with me about anything at all.¡± Mrs. Lane incessantly nodded her head. ¡°That¡¯s the way to do it. It¡¯s all about understanding and trust between couples. Communication and understanding are the keys to a longsting marriage.¡± Once Mr. Zachary was back from his business trip, Mrs. Lane intended to persuade him toe clean. The missus would only be angrier the longer he kept the truth from her. Serenity drank half the ss of water and looked at the time. It was eleven o¡¯clock at night. She told Mrs. Lane, ¡°It¡¯ste, Mrs. Lane. You should get some sleep. I¡¯m going to my room for a wash.¡± She also sent Zachary a text message. He reminded her repeatedly before going away that she must send him messages. ¡°Goodnight, Ms. Hunt.¡± Mrs. Lane retreated to her room after saying goodnight. Although Grandma May was gone, Serenity continued to upy Zachary¡¯s room instead of returning to her room. Half an hourter, shey in bed with the covers over her. Still feeling cold, she got up and turned on the heater to warm the ce up. She then sent a text message to Zachary. [Hot water bottle, are you done for the day yet?] Zachary was swamped with work, but he had been keeping an eye on his phone. He was upset that he had not received a single message from Serenity. Sure, he told her to drop in a message at night, but she did not have to wait until midnight to do so. Did she really not miss him? It sounded about right. She was humming to a tune, wishing he would leave right away when she packed his luggage. As if she would miss him. Now that she finally sent him a message, Serenity called him a hot water bottle. It took a lot in Zachary not to blow up. Could not be bothered to type, Zachary gave Serenity a call. Chapter 605 Chapter 605 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 605 Serenity took Zachary¡¯s call. ¡°I¡¯m not a hot water bottle! ¡± The first thing that came out of Zachary¡¯s mouth was to correct what Serenity called him. Serenity chuckled. ¡°I¡¯m feeling cold now, so I thought about you. You¡¯re warmer than a hot water bottle.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was gruff. ¡°So, you wouldn¡¯t think of me if you weren¡¯t feeling cold?¡± Serenity dly admitted to that fact. ¡°I probably would¡¯ve gone right to bed if I weren¡¯t cold. Oh, I¡¯ll send you a goodnight gif.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Are you done with your work? You should carry on if you aren¡¯t. I¡¯m going to bed.¡± Serenity was about to hang up the call. ¡°Serenity.¡± Zachary huskily asked, ¡°Are your DNA test results with Mrs. Stone out yet?¡± ¡°The results are out. Mrs. Stone is my aunt. We¡¯re rted by blood.¡± Although his heart sank, Zachary did not show it in his face or tone. ¡°Congrattions on finding your family.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± She only had her sister for fifteen years. Now that an aunt suddenly came into the picture, Serenity wondered if she was in a dream as it felt surreal. ¡°That reminds me, Zachary. Your nana moved back to the family home. Callum came tonight to pick her up. ¡°I wasn¡¯t home. Ms. Lane told me about it.¡± Zachary could not believe how quickly Nana slipped away. ¡°She goes wherever her heart takes her. I¡¯m used to hering and going.¡± Grandma May owned many properties, and she would often stay a couple of nights here and there. It was hard to locate the olddy unless she came looking for them. ¡°Did anything happen today? Did Shawn go to your shop?¡± ¡°Jesus. I can feel your jealousy all the way here. Shawn¡¯s a busy man too. He probably won¡¯t meet with me after I turned him down. You can rx and focus on your work. I promise I won¡¯t cheat on you.¡± After a pause, she bantered, ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting for you toe home and eat you up.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°I better fatten myself up, so you can have a delicious meal.¡± Serenity remarked after a brief pause, ¡°Zachary, you¡¯ve changed.¡± ¡°I changed because you changed me. I changed because of you. ¡± He did not have a way with words albeit woulde through sometimes. Serenity thought it was cheesy at first, but she would feel all sweet and warm inside when thinking back. ¡°Serenity.¡± ¡°Yeah?¡± ¡°Anything else you want to talk about?¡± Serenity yawned. ¡°No. 1¡¯11 talk to you in my dreams.¡± Zachary was lost for words. ¡°You must be busy. I¡¯ll leave you to it and get some sleep. Tomorrow will be a busy one for me. The term break starts after tomorrow.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Don¡¯t strain yourself.¡± ¡°Everything¡¯s worth it when the moneyes in. That¡¯s it now. I¡¯m heading to bed, Zachary. Goodnight.¡± Serenity ended the call after saying goodnight. She had hung up before Zachary could say more. Staring at his phone, Zachary mumbled, ¡°Serenity, your attitude makes me feel insecure.¡± He got the feeling that she was not in love with him. Although Serenity often talked about jumping him, the truth of the matter was, she had not given her heart fully to him. Chapter 606 Chapter 606 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 606 Zachary, on the other hand, became more addicted and fell deeper in love with Serenity. Ring ring ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang again. He thought it was Serenity, but then he saw the caller ID and it was Duncan. ¡°Duncan.¡± Zachary leaned back on the ck swivel chair and asked indifferently, ¡°Why are you calling me sote at night?¡± ¡°There¡¯s something important I need to tell you. Do you know that your wife has an aunt? It¡¯s Mrs. Stone. It turns out that the sister Mrs. Stone has been looking for is your mother-inw.¡± Duncan was not as gossipy as Josh, but he loved to watch drama and gloat on the sidelines. He just felt that he should ry this news to his best friend. ¡°Stone Group and York Corporation have always been at odds. Clive and you will never appear at the same ce together. The rtionship between the two of you is completely frozen¡­ I just thought of something.¡± Duncan muttered in hindsight, ¡°When you treated Clive to that meal back then, did you already know that your wife was Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece? Is that why you tried patching up your rtionship with Clive in advance?¡± Zachary was a little embarrassed and angry that his thoughts were read by his best friend. Fortunately, Duncan was thousands of miles away and did not know how he was feeling right now. ¡°I was in a good mood that day, and Clive rarely takes his clients to Wiltspoon Hotel for a meal, so I bought them lunch. I just wanted them to know that our Wiltspoon Hotel is worthy of its name. That¡¯s all. ¡°I¡¯m not a god. How could I know in advance that my mother-in-w is the sister who Mrs. Stone has been looking for? I only found out just now when I asked Serenity.¡± That was also true. However, he had a hunch that Mrs. Stone¡¯s sister was his mother- inw who died long ago. That was why he generously invited Clive and his party to a meal when he met Clive that day. ¡°What are you going to do now that you know?¡± Duncan asked with concern, ¡°Are you going to reconcile with the Stones?¡± ¡°Serenity and Mrs. Stone are aunt and niece. They have no influence on the decision-making of York Corporation. A great man cannot brook a rival. Between York Corporation and Stone Group, only one of us will remain standing.¡± Duncan paused before adding. ¡°You¡¯re a businessman through and through. You only talk about profit and never about feelings.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Zachary said faintly, ¡°In the business world of deceit, feelings will only be used by the opponent. You¡¯ll be swallowed and everything will go up in smoke.¡± That was unless the Stone Group intended to make peace with him. Only when both sides took a step back would it be possible to ease rtions. ¡°Elisa has been infatuated with you for years. If she finds out about your rtionship with Serenity and with her explosive personality, will your wife be in trouble?¡± Duncan felt that this matter was a concern. ¡°They¡¯ve be cousins, so maybe she won¡¯t do anything to your wife, but your wife will definitely feel as if she robbed her cousin¡¯s beloved man. She¡¯ll kick you away.¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°Duncan Lewis, can you speak a little more tactfully?¡± He was overly straightforward. Duncanughed. ¡°You know I¡¯ve always been like this. I don¡¯t like to beat around the bush. Do you think I can talk in circles like Josh? ¡°Serenity and her sister are strong-natured. If she finds out the truth¡­ I¡¯m having a headache on your behalf just thinking about it.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression darkened as he said, ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. I can handle it myself.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. I won¡¯t be able to help you even if you ask for my help. You can call me if it¡¯s a fight, but I¡¯m not good at dealing with matters involving emotions. ¡°Zachary, you can¡¯t deal with emotional problems either, right? You¡¯re no better than I am in that regard.¡± Zachary was speechless. Duncan had zero tact. His words were stabbing Zachary like a knife. ¡°By the way, your sister-inw was in trouble again. Her former mother-inw and sister-inw came to the office to find her, and they had a fight. I guess it won¡¯t be easy for your sister-inw to live the quiet life she wants. Now that the Brown family knows that Mrs. Stone is your sister-inw¡¯s aunt, I don¡¯t know what kind of mishap they¡¯ll be up to in the future.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice instantly turned cold. ¡°Serenity didn¡¯t tell me a word about that!¡± She did not treat him as her family! Duncan froze. Did he say too much? Chapter 607 Chapter 607 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 607 ¡°Zachary, maybe Serenity didn¡¯t tell you because she didn¡¯t want you to worry?¡± Duncan felt that he made a mistake and quickly offered an exnation. However, Zachary hung up the phone. Duncan said to himself, ¡°Damn it. What am I supposed to do if the couple gets into a quarrel because of this?¡± Once Zachary cared about a person, he would want the other party to put him first. In simpler terms, he was overbearing. His domineering nature would sometimes let people feel like he cared about them, but other times, it made people feel suffocated as if they could not breathe. What was worse was that Zachary would feel like he was in the wrong. For example, he felt like he fell in love with Serenity, so he was willing to do everything for her. However, Serenity was independent and would not tell him everything for him to help her with. Thus, Zachary would feel that Serenity did not trust him and did not treat him as family. Duncan called Zachary again, but it went to the mailbox because the number he dialed was on hold. ¡°Did he call Serenity in the middle of the night to question her?¡± Duncan felt at a loss. He merely said a few words. How did it cause so much trouble? Josh was usually the one having such a loose mouth, but he never saw Josh get into trouble. Zachary actually called Serenity. The couple had just ended the call not long ago, so he dared to bet that Serenity was not yet asleep. Thus, he could not resist calling her. Serenity was still awake. When she heard the phone ring, she reached out of the covers for the phone and quickly retrieved her hand back in. It was cold. After turning on the heating for a while, she did not like how dry it was, so she turned it off again. There was no hot water bottle in Zachary¡¯s room, and the natural hot water bottle that was Zachary himself was on a business trip, so she had to bundle herself up to stay warm. She saw that it was Zachary calling again. She answered the call. ¡°What¡¯s up? I¡¯m going to sleep.¡± ¡°What happened today?¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was low. Serenity had been getting along with him for some time and knew that his mood was different when his tone changed. She instinctively said, ¡°Nothing happened. I told you, I found out that Mrs. Stone is my aunt. What¡¯s with that tone, Zachary? You sound as if you¡¯re interrogating me. I didn¡¯t take advantage of your business trip to eat and go shopping with other men.¡± What tone? ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to tell me about your sister? Even Duncan knows about it, and you¡¯re not telling me even though I¡¯m asking you about it. Serenity, do you not regard me as your family? You didn¡¯t even tellExclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. me about something this big.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°My sister and her former mother-inw have a fight every once in a while. Is that something big to you? We can handle it ourselves, so there¡¯s no need to bother you. Besides, you¡¯re away from home on a business trip. Are you going to fly home and help us fight them even if I were to tell you? ¡°Mr. Lewis knows about it because he¡¯s the boss of my sister¡¯spany. Those two women went for my sister outside her office building, and Mr. Lewis saw it as he was getting off work. I didn¡¯t tell him deliberately. When I arrived, my sister and them had finished fighting, and police officers had already arrived. I didn¡¯t even have the chance to do anything.¡± ¡°I told you to tell me when you encounter difficulties! ¡± Serenity sat up. ¡®Did this man not listen to a single word I said? He¡¯s justser pointing at the fact that I didn¡¯t tell him about this matter.¡¯ She said patiently, ¡°Zachary, I also told you that I will handle stuff that I can handle myself. There¡¯s no need to bother you, and I won¡¯tpletely depend on you. Like I said, even if I¡¯ve told you, you can¡¯t come back to help me anyway. Why should I tell you just to worry you? ¡°If you want to escte the matter to the point of saying that I don¡¯t regard you as family, then I can¡¯t help it. Either way, can you guarantee that you¡¯ve told me everything? I don¡¯t even know where your hometown is. Doesn¡¯t that mean you don¡¯t regard me as your family either?¡± Zachary choked. ¡°Zachary York, you¡¯re a six-foot-tall grown-up man. Can you be a little less petty? Don¡¯t get angry because of something trivial and bicker over every single thing with me. I know you¡¯re worried about me, but I¡¯m not the kind of weak person who needs your help 24/7. ¡°If that is what you want from your wife, then I¡¯m sorry. I can¡¯t do it.¡± Chapter 608 Chapter 608 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 608 After witnessing her sister and Hank getting to know each other, falling in love, and then ending up in such an ugly divorce, Serenity felt that it was better to rely on herself than on others. Even if he was someone she shared a bed with, she could not bepletely dependent on him. That was because the person who shared her bed might be a person who shared someone else¡¯s bed at any time. ¡°Are you calling me narrow-minded?¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was low and chilly, like the weather in this cold winter month. He wanted to know everything about her because he cared about her. However, she did not take the initiative to tell him, saying that he was narrow-minded and that he got angry over trivial matters. Was this trivial? Even someone like Duncan knew about it, but Zachary only found out because Duncan told him. If Duncan did not tell him and he did not ask, she might have never told him. He cared about her, but she was not touched. Instead, she felt that it was useless to tell him because he was not home. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°I do think that you¡¯re short-tempered. You¡¯re always so self centered. You get angry as soon as people don¡¯t do as you want.¡± He had a lot of good points, but he also had ws. No one was perfect, and Serenity did not ask him to be perfect either. She had a lot of ws herself too since they were both normal human beings. She told him about his shorings so he could change. If he did not change, then they could only go through rounds of friction. In the end, she either had to learn how to tolerate them or ignore them. Zachary hung up the phone. Serenity was stunned. ¡°He hung up on me. Can he get even angrier?¡± She threw the phone on the table, feeling a little mad herself, and muttered, ¡°I¡¯ve made it clear to him. Why is he still angry? Fine, he can be angry if he wants to. I don¡¯t care.¡± Did he want her to tell him about every single thing? Serenity grumbled, ¡°I told him at the beginning that I¡¯ll handle the stuff that I can handle by myself instead of bothering him. What about him? Does he tell me everything as well? Can he guarantee that there¡¯s nothing that he¡¯s hiding from me? ¡°His double standards are ridiculous!¡± He was so domineering. His overbearing trait sometimes made her feel as sweet as honey, but other times, it gave her a feeling of being so tightly restrained by him that it was difficult for her to even catch her breath. There was just a sense of suffocation. Her sleepinesspletely vanished because of the call from Zachary. She picked up the phone again and sent a message to him. However, he did not reply to her. ¡°Again! There he goes again! ¡± Serenity threw the phone back to the foot of the bed. What a petty man. Every time theirmunication fell through, he would act like this. He stopped replying to messages she sent. ¡®If he doesn¡¯t want to reply, then fine! ¡®1 don¡¯t care!¡¯ Serenity picked up the phone and ced it on the nightstand. Shey down and got ready to be taken away by the sandman. However, she was still vexed. She tossed and turned with slumbend far from reach. Chapter 609 Chapter 609 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 609 A few minutester, Serenity sat up from the bed and pondered. She then slid out of bed, began to pack her household goods, and took them back to her room. She would not sleep in his bed anymore. She angrily moved back to her room to sleep. Zachary was likewise still sulking. He received the message from Serenity and read it, but he did not reply. Instead, he deleted it instantly. He only had one thought in his mind, and that was how Serenity used him of being. narrow-minded and did not treat him as a family. Putting the phone on the desk, Zachary got up and paced back and forth in the office, incredibly annoyed. In the end, he went and made himself a cup of coffee. After drinking the coffee, he forced himself to calm down and got back to work. He intended to work through the night. Serenity was so angry that she tossed and turned, failing to fall asleep, but after an hour or ¡®so, she stopped being angry. It was not the first time he acted like this. If she got mad at him every time, her life span would probably shorten. It was not worth it. Thus, she stopped being angry and went away with the sandman. ¡®He can be mad if he wants to! ¡®That petty man is so self-centered. He doesn¡¯t tell me everything about himself, but he wants me to tell him everything that happens in my life. ¡®He¡¯s not even at home. What, is he going to fly back if I tell him?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. In fact, Serenity did not do anything regarding that matter either. Her aunt¡¯s introduction already scared away the Brown family¡¯s mother and daughter. The person who made the decision was Liberty. Liberty chose to reconcile because of Sonny. It was her sister¡¯s decision, so Serenity respected it. That man evenser-pointed on how Duncan knew about it but he was kept in the dark instead. Duncan was Liberty¡¯s boss. Was it not normal for him to know about something that happened in front of hispany? It was not like she deliberately told Duncan about it. Serenity felt that Zachary was being ridiculous in his jealousy. It was ratherte into the night when she fell asleep. Zachary, who was away on a business trip, drank a total of two cups of coffee whichsted him until dawn. The next day, he continued to work. In Josh¡¯s words, every time Zachary got angry, he threw himself into his work. His work efficiency was particrly high, so the people following him could not keep up and had to work overtime. It was fine if it was one or two days but when they worked overtime tillte every day, everyone in thepany started toin. Serenity got upte because she sleptte. Mrs. Lane had done most of the morning routine from making breakfast and feeding the pets to watering the nts and hanging out on the swing chair before Serenity got up. ¡°Good morning, Ms. Hunt.¡± Serenity yawned. Maybe due to the poor sleep quality, she was having a headache and sore eyes. She was still having these ailments despite having slept enough hours, so she guessed it must have been because she was furious when she fell asleep. ¡°Good morning, Mrs. Lane.¡± Serenity did not tell Mrs. Lane about herself not feeling well. Looking at the time, she cried in a low voice, ¡°It¡¯s eight o¡¯clock!¡± She did not know if her sister was going to work. She had to go over to pick Sonny up. Chapter 610 Chapter 610 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 610 ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Hunt. Take your time with breakfast. Your sister just called me and said. that she sent Sonny to the store. Ms. Sox is already there. She told us to head directly to the storeter. There¡¯s no need to drop by her new ce.¡± 4 Serenity sighed in relief and sat down at the dining table. Mrs. Lane prepared sandwiches for her today with all kinds of fillings, as well as a pot of ck coffee. ck coffee¡­ Serenity took out her phone and photographed the pot of coffee, then sent it to the petty man. Unsurprisingly, Zachary did not reply to her. Serenity grumbled. ¡°Are the sandwiches not good, Ms. Hunt?¡± Mrs. Lane heard Serenity grumble and thought the sandwiches she made were lousy. She asked, ¡°What kind of sandwiches do you fancy? Tell me and I¡¯ll make them for you tomorrow.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not a picky eater, Mrs. Lane. I like all kinds of sandwiches. ¡°You sit down too. Let¡¯s talk while we eat.¡± With Zachary not at home, Mrs. Lane was a lot morefortable. Although Zachary acted gentle in front of Serenity, he was a prestigious person. Mrs. Lane did not feel at ease dining at the same table as him. ¡°Mrs. Lane, you¡¯ve been a nanny for Zachary¡¯s ninth cousin for a few years and have known Zachary for several years, right? Do you think he¡¯s overbearing and self-centered? He demands that other people don¡¯t hide anything from him.¡± Mrs. Lane was taking a sip of oatmeal. After listening to Serenity, she looked up and asked with concern, ¡°Ms. Hunt, why are you asking that?¡± Serenity sipped the coffee and said, ¡°I think I quarreled with Zacharyst night. It seems we¡¯re in a cold war again.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. It had just been one night, but here they were having another squabble, and a cold war at that. ¡°Why did you quarrel with Mr. York?¡± Recently, Zachary and Serenity were obviously getting along very well. The couple slept in the same room, and Grandma May saw the couple¡¯s feelings heating up and seemed to have stabilized, so she packed up her luggage and moved back to the old residence. It was also to avoid the Stone family. ¡°It was just before going to bed. I sent him a message, he called, and we chatted for a while. I was sleepy and he was still busy, so I quickly ended the call because I didn¡¯t want to disturb him. I didn¡¯t tell him about my sister¡¯s fight with her ex-inws. ¡°Maybe Mr. Lewis called him and mentioned that incident, so he quickly called me to question me, asking why I didn¡¯t tell him about that incident. He even said that I don¡¯t treat him like family.¡± Serenity took another sip of coffee ¡°Where did you buy this coffee, Mrs. Lane? It¡¯s so bitter.¡± This would suit that petty man¡¯s taste. ¡°Say, he¡¯s on a business trip and not at home. I didn¡¯t tell him because I didn¡¯t want him to worry for no reason. He couldn¡¯te back to help us anyway. Besides, we can solve things on our own. We can¡¯t always wait for him to return to handle everything, right? ¡°Just because I didn¡¯t mention my sister¡¯s incident, he said that I don¡¯t treat him as family. In that case, he doesn¡¯t treat me as his family either. Since the beginning of our marriage, he held his guard up against me, questioning me and thinking that I had married him because I wanted his money. He thought I wanted his house so I didn¡¯t have to rent a ce after marrying him.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°He even made me sign an agreement where nine out of the ten conditions were restrictions on me, but I endured it. We got married out of convenience, so he was cautious about me and suspected me. He made me sign a contract saying that we would divorce peacefully within six months if we don¡¯t develop feelings for each other. ¡°I agreed to every single one of his terms, but then he identally destroyed my agreement and yed dumb, saying that I remembered wrongly and he never asked me to sign any agreement. Fine, I yed along since he wanted to go back on his words, but has he beenpletely honest with me as well? ¡°Mrs. Lane, even you know where his home is, right? But I don¡¯t. I¡¯ve been married to him for so long, but although I¡¯ve met his family, I don¡¯t even know where my inws live.¡± Chapter 611 Chapter 611 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 611 ¡°Zachary doesn¡¯t fully treat me as a family either. What right does he have to demand me to be completely open with him when he can¡¯t do the same for me? He¡¯s being hypocritical. He has to have the final say in everything. When things don¡¯t go his way, he gets angry and says I don¡¯t think of him as family. ¡°I got mad too and said that he was self¨Ccentered and narrow¨Cminded, so he hung up on me. When I sent him a message, he refused to reply to me. He¡¯s always like this. He stops. replying to my messages every time he¡¯s angry, and he doesn¡¯t pick up my calls either. He¡¯s like a petty woman.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. Zachary was indeed like that. Serenity¡¯s analysis was spot on. Zachary was raised as a sessor since he was young. All his younger brothers revolved around him. When he took the helm of York Corporation, whether it was Old Mrs. York or his parents, they relented and let him inplete charge of thepany. In York Corporation, his word wasw. His brothers and everyone in thepany deferred to him. He was already domineering by nature but coupled with that environment, it raised him to be the center of all things. He was used to lording over everyone and having them be subservient to him. However, Serenity¡¯s life experiences had her refusing to let him dominate her. She was not used to obeying him in everything and relying on him. Zachary would feel that he was neglected by Serenity. He felt that Serenity did not pay enough attention to him. He felt that she did not treat him as a family. However, in Serenity¡¯s words, was hepletely honest with her? ¡°Mrs. Lane, help me keep track. Let¡¯s see how many days he¡¯ll keep up this cold war with me. I won¡¯t bother sending him messages anymore since it¡¯s like shouting into the void. Maybe he deleted my contact again. ¡°If he really did do so, I¡¯ll never add him again in my life!¡± Mrs. Lane responded, ¡°Mr. York is a bit overbearing. He¡¯s angry because he feels that you don¡¯t pay enough attention to him and exclude him.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve already exined it to him, but what can I do if he keeps being stubborn? He can stay angry if he wants to. Anyway, out of sight, out of mind. Let¡¯s not talk about him anymore. Let¡¯s eat.¡± Serenity was done speaking and bit into another sandwich. She finished two sandwiches, a te of pancakes, and a cup of coffee. Mrs. Lane was worried that she had eaten too much. Serenity did not overeat. She was a glutton and had arge appetite, so she ate a little more because she was angry. It would not kill her. However, she still had a headache, and her eyes still hurt. She sat on the swing chair on the balcony for a while before heading back inside and rummaging through the cabs. ¡°What are you looking for, Ms. Hunt?¡± After washing the dishes, Mrs. Lane came out of the kitchen and saw Serenity looking for something. ¡°I cleaned up the house, so some things may not have been put back in their original ces.¡± ¡°I¡¯m looking for the home first¨Caid kit. It¡¯s a white box I bought online. It¡¯s the family medicine box.¡± Mrs. Lane hummed, went into the guestroom, and soon came out holding the medicine box. ¡°I ced it in the guest room. Are you feeling unwell?¡± ¡°My head and eyes hurt. It¡¯s because I didn¡¯t sleep well. I¡¯ll be fine after taking a painkiller.¡± Opening the medicine box, Mrs. Lane watched as Serenity snapped a tablet of painkiller from the sheet and popped it into her mouth. Mrs. Lane quickly poured her a cup of warm water. ¡°Do you often have headaches, Ms. Hunt?¡± ¡°No, just on asion. The medicine works fast, so I always have it at home.¡± Mrs. Lane said, ¡°You should still take it sparingly. The medicine has side effects.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t take it often. The pharmacist informed me too that there are side effects when I bought the medicine. I only take it when I have headaches and pain behind the eyes. because of poor sleep.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She only had the medicine because she had to go back to the store today. Ten minutester, Serenity took her purse as well as her car keys and said to Mrs. Lane, ¡± Let¡¯s go, Mrs. Lane.¡± mop the floor first, Ms. Hunt. You go on ahead. I¡¯ll take a cab thereter.¡± Mrs. Lane wanted to wait for Serenity to leave so she could call Zachary. Chapter 612 Chapter 612 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 612 Seeing that Mrs. Lane was mopping the floor, Serenity did not think much of it and went off by herself. Mrs. Lane sent her off at the door and watched her enter the elevator before returning to the house. She hurriedly got her cell phone to call Zachary. At first, he did not answer. Mrs. Lane called him three more times, but he still did not pick up. She sent him a message. [Mr. Zachary, the missus took some medicine.] In less than a minute, Zachary called Mrs. Lane. ¡°What medicine did Seren take?¡± Zachary spoke in a voice that still sounded the same as usual, low and cold, but Mrs. Lane was familiar with him and could hear the nervousness in his tone. ¡°She said she didn¡¯t sleep well and had a headache and sore eyes, so she took a painkiller.¡± Zachary suddenly stopped talking. He got the fright of his life! Mrs. Lane was vague. He thought Serenity took some pills and attempted suicide. Well, he was obviously far off the mark. ?erenity had a cheerful personality. There was no way she wouldmit suicide, let alone because of him. He thought too highly of himself. In his heart, he was even inferior to an outsider like Jasmine. ¡°Mr. Zachary, the missus told me all about it when we were having breakfast.¡± Mrs. Lane sighed. ¡°Mr. Zachary, I think you have to figure out why you like the missus. What do you like about her? Don¡¯t try to change her to your wants. If you really change her, will she still be the same missus who you like?¡± ¡°She doesn¡¯t tell me anything. Even Duncan knows things that I don¡¯t.¡± ¡°Then, did you tell her everything about yourself? Don¡¯t forget that you¡¯re still hiding your identity from the missus. You hide a lot of things from her.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Whose side are you on, Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°I¡¯m on your side, of course. It¡¯s because I¡¯m on your side and I want you to be happy that I¡¯m saying all this. Why would I bother otherwise? I¡¯m just a servant.¡± ¡°We all respect you, Mrs. Lane.¡± Zachary was aloof and domineering, but he was polite and respectful to his servants. ¡°Old Mrs. York just went home, and you¡¯re fighting with the missus again. She said she sent you a message, but you didn¡¯t reply to her. Are you getting into a cold war with her again?¡±Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary was silent. He just did not want to reply to messages when he was in a bad mood. ¡°Don¡¯t keep thinking about wanting to change the missus. Oftentimes, it¡¯s you who have to change for her.¡± ¡°Is she still angry now?¡± Mrs. Lane was silent. Serenity was lighthearted and no longer angry. Zachary¡¯s temper red again. ¡°She¡¯s not angry, isn¡¯t she? She still eats and sleeps well. I¡¯m the only one who¡¯s enraged. I drank two cups of coffee and worked all night.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. ¡®The missus is right. Mr. Zachary is truly short¨Ctempered.¡® She sighed. The rtionship between this couple was still not deep enough. This was the aftermath of a marriage of convenience. Other newlyweds entered their honeymoon phase at the beginning of their marriage, but Serenity and Zachary were only getting to know each other. ¡°I¡¯m busy, Mrs. Lane. Don¡¯t disturb my work unless something happens.¡± Zachary hung up when he was done talking. Chapter 613 Chapter 613 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 613 When Serenity arrived at the store, she just so happened to see Joshing out. He turned his head and waved goodbye as he walked away. Serenity did not have to ask to know that he was speaking to Jasmine. He greeted Serenity politely when he saw her. Serenity smiled back. She was not familiar with Josh but was aware of his true identity, so she was a bit reserved. Josh and Serenity had nothing to talk about either, and she was his friend¡¯s wife. It was inappropriate for him to interact much with her when his friend was not around. ¡°I¡¯ll head back to the office, Ms. Hunt.¡± ¡°Bye, Mr. Bucham.¡± Josh smiled, got into the car, and quickly drove away. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Only then did Serenity enter the store. As soon as she did, she saw arge bouquet of flowers ced on the cashier¡¯s desk. At a nce, there seemed to be ny-nine roses. In addition to the bouquet, there was arge bag beside it that was filled with a variety of snacks Jasmine ate regrly. There were also a few sets of Jasmine¡¯smonly used and most loved skincare products. Jasmine was sitting at the cash register with Sonny in her arms, opening up a bag of snacks to share with the boy. When she saw Serenity enter, she smiled and said, ¡°There¡¯s food. Mr. Bucham delivered a lot of snacks. We won¡¯t feel bored watching the store anymore.¡± ¡°Ant Swer,¡± Sonny greeted Serenity, with his gaze going back to the bag of snacks in Jasmine¡¯s hand. Jasmine tipped the bag and took a cracker from it to feed Sonny. Sonny ate while reaching out to the bag for more. ¡°Don¡¯t eat too much, Sonny. It¡¯ll affect your appetite.¡± After Jasmine gave Sonny a few more crackers, she stopped feeding him for fear he would snack on too much and refuse a proper mealter. Serenity looked at the snacks in the bag as well as the sets of skincare products. She teased her friend, ¡°Mr. Bucham has figured out all your preferences. They¡¯re all favorite vors and the brands you like to use on a daily basis.¡± your Zachary never bought her snacks or sent her skincare products. All he knew was to get angry when she used the mask sent by Elisa. He even asked what brands she preferred using so he would buy them for her in the future and not use stuff from Elisa anymore. All talk and no walk. Zachary actually bought her snacks before, but he was still arrogant at that time and could not put aside his pride, so he said that they were for Sonny. Jasmine said, ¡°Elisa already said that Mr. Bucham is from a family that deals with information. I¡¯m basically as in as day to him. If I want to know something about him, I¡¯ll never find out unless he voluntarily tells me himself. ¡°People from families that deal with intelligence are great at prying into other people¡¯s affairs and equally great at protecting their own privacy.¡± Serenity thought about it and agreed. Sheughed. ¡°I feel as if you¡¯re losing interest in him by the day whereas he¡¯se to like you more. He has even started pursuing you.¡± He hand-delivered such arge bouquet of flowers. Meanwhile, her petty husband had never sent her ny-nine roses before. ¡°It¡¯s not that I hate it. I just feel like I don¡¯t have privacy in front of him.¡± Josh was eloquent, gentle, polite, and attractive. Jasmine had a good first impression of him. She did not hate him, but she did not like him either. After all, they had only met a few times. ¡°Let¡¯s go one step at a time. You can think about the future when you develop feelings for each other. If you can¡¯t, then don¡¯t force yourself. You don¡¯t have to worry about Zachary¡¯s job. He hadn¡¯t just started building connections with Mr. Bucham now.¡± Jasmine was indeed worried that her best friend¡¯s husband would have his job affected by Josh if she rejected him. After discovering Josh¡¯s real identity, she searched the web for news rted to him, but unfortunately, there was not much. She only knew Josh¡¯s position in York Corporation. Chapter 614 Chapter 614 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 614 Finally, Jasmine mustered the courage to shamelessly ask Elisa about Josh. She found out that if Josh truly wanted to mess with someone, that person¡¯s fate would be worse than death. His y was to let that particr person lose everything bit by bit and taste despair one. drop at a time. It was a slow torture to the mind. Therefore, Jasmine was a little worried she would offend him if she rejected him, and he would unleash his anger on Zachary instead. ¡°I¡¯ll give it a try. Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t force myself.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Although she was worried, she would not actually force herself when it came down to it. ¡°Seren, did you not go to the Stone residencest night? I was shocked by your sister¡¯s face when she brought Sonny over.¡± Serenity¡¯s expression turned resentful at the mention of that incident. She cursed the entire Brown family in her heart. If not for Olivia and Chelsea picking a fight with Liberty, she would not have gotten into a fight with Zachary again. Well, with a character like Zachary¡¯s, they would still have conflicts sooner orter. Serenity wondered how many times they had to fight until their sharp edges wore down and stopped being so prickly.. ¡°Jasmine, let¡¯s go to the bar for a couple of drinks after work tonight.¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°You¡¯ve got a lot of guts now that your husband is on a business trip and isn¡¯t home to control you.¡± ¡°I can go wherever I want even if he¡¯s home. I don¡¯t control him, and he can¡¯t control me either.¡± Sensing something was off with Serenity¡¯s tone, Jasmine¡¯s smile faded and she looked at her friend¡¯s expression cautiously before asking tentatively, ¡°Seren, did you fight with your husband again?¡± got sick. She heard the young couple almost had a falling out too on the day that she The reason was Zachary saw her cousin, Shawn, sending flowers to Serenity. For that reason, Jasmine went to have a long talk with her cousin again. When she thought of Shawn¡¯s reluctance, she felt a little uneasy inside. She had a feeling that he was not listening to her well¨Cmeaning advice at all. He was trapped in a dead end now with no way forward, but he was unwilling to turn back, so he was stuck in ce. ¡°No, I just feel depressedtely, so I want to have a couple of drinks at the bar to let off steam.¡± Since Serenity did not wish to say more, Jasmine wisely let it go. Meanwhile, at Lewis & Co., Duncan called Zachary, but his friend did not answer. When he sent a message, it took a long time before Zachary replied with two words. [I¡¯m busy.] That meant Zachary was too busy to take his calls. Duncan felt this was the consequence of him running his mouthst night, and this in return cost him the focus he needed for work. After some deliberation, he pressed the inte and instructed his secretary, ¡°Ask Liberty Hunt from the finance department toe see me.¡± The secretary immediately made an internal call to the finance department and notified Liberty to see Duncan. Upon receiving such a notice, everyone in the finance department looked at Liberty. Plenty of witnesses saw what happened yesterday evening. As a woman, many sympathized Liberty¡¯s situation and were of the opinion that she had handled the divorce exceptionally. Of course, those who did not like Liberty would say that she deserved to be abandoned by her husband, so on and so forth. Liberty put her work on hold before she calmly got up and walked out of the office. She had just left the office and was not far away when she heard her colleagues mock her for trying to take advantage of Duncan¡¯s help to build connections with him. She halted in her steps. Chapter 615 Chapter 615 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 615 Turning around, Liberty went back into the office. That colleague was still chatting away. happily with the others. Liberty went straight to that person¡¯s desk and only then did the colleague realize that Liberty hade back. The woman was a bit overwhelmed by the embarrassment of being caught red¨Chanded. while speaking badly behind someone¡¯s back. ¡°Do you have a crush on Mr. Lewis?¡± Liberty¡¯s words instantly made the girl¡¯s face turn red. ¡°Of course not.¡± She denied it. ¡°Then is it fascinating for you to spread rumors that Mr. Lewis and I have a secret affair? I heard the bitterness in your tone, so it¡¯s clear that you have a crush on Mr. Lewis. That¡¯s why you¡¯re always targeting me. ¡°Whether you believe me or not, I don¡¯t have any interest in Mr. Lewis. I¡¯m indeed divorced, but that¡¯s because my husband cheated on me. Was I supposed to keep him until the new year before divorcing him? Now that I¡¯m divorced, do I have to be subjected to rumors by you saying that I¡¯m seducing Mr. Lewis? ¡°Mr. Lewis is an open and upright person. If there was anything going on between us, he would never hide it.¡± Liberty looked at thedy coldly and added, ¡°If I hear you talking nonsense again and creating rumors behind my back, I¡¯ll sue you for nder!¡± She then turned on her heels and walked away. The woman¡¯splexion shifted between the colors of red and white. The others watched as Liberty strode off coldly. All of them heard what she said earlier. and felt as if Liberty was warning them too. There were too many rumors about her in thepany. If Liberty truly wanted to sue them for nder¡­ Liberty knocked on the door of Duncan¡¯s office with a cold face. ¡°Is your face okay?¡± Duncan asked with concern when he saw the scratches on Liberty¡¯s face had not completely disappeared. ¡°It¡¯ll be fine in a couple of days. Thank you for your concern.¡± Liberty stood two meters away from his desk. ¡°Have a seat,¡± Duncan told her to sit down. Neither did Liberty speak, nore closer. She merely stood there, looked at Duncan, and asked calmly, ¡°Did you need me for something?¡± ¡°Yes, well¡­ I wanted to ask about your sister¡¯s situation.¡± ¡°Seren?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Liberty instinctively said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, my sister is already married.¡± Duncan was stunned before snapping to his senses and said, ¡°Don¡¯t misunderstand, Liberty. That¡¯s not what I meant. I¡¯m well aware that your sister is a married woman, and that her husband is working at York Corporation. Ourpany has business dealings with York Corporation, and I can say that Zachary and I are friends. ¡°The thing is, I talked shop with Zacharyst night and at the end of the call, I mentioned the incident from yesterday evening. Your brother¨Cinw seemed very angry because your sister did not tell him about it. I was worried the couple would fight because I let slip what happened. ¡°I was so deeply upset that I couldn¡¯t focus on my work, so I had to call you up to ask about the situation.¡± Liberty paused, then said, ¡°They should be fine. Seren was still sleeping when I came to work this morning. I think she¡¯s fine.¡± Duncan could not manage to get a full answer, so he could only say, ¡°That¡¯s good. You didn¡¯t look very happy when you came in earlier. Did you have a fight with your colleagues?¡± He had a sharp eye. Liberty¡¯s face was cold when she came in. She fell silent. Chapter 616 Chapter 616 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 616 Duncan spoke up. ¡°I know I made things hard for you in thepany because I personally hired you, but you don¡¯t have to worry about what others say. Just do your own thing.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, I want to resign.¡± Duncan¡¯s eyes deepened as he asked, ¡°Why do you want to resign?¡± Liberty was silent, then she raised her head to look at Duncan and said, ¡°Back then, I was told that I came in through the back door, and I was secretly targeted by everyone. However, I put up with it in order to get a divorce and win custody of my son. ¡°It was because I needed a job to fight for Sonny¡¯s custody.¡± ¡°So now that you¡¯re divorced and you¡¯ve won the custody of your son, you want to resign?¡± Duncan picked up from where she left off. ¡°You haven¡¯t evenpleted your probation period.¡± He added, ¡°You¡¯re a capable person, and you¡¯re good at your job. I believe that you know this too, but whatever they say about you, you don¡¯t have to listen to them as long as you have a clear conscience.¡± ¡°They¡¯re also saying that I covet you, Mr. Lewis. I don¡¯t want to harm your reputation.¡± Where there were people, there would be trouble. Liberty knew that. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She used to be a CFO herself, and she was hired to work in Lewis & Co. by Duncan himself. Everyone imed that she came in through the back door. Her superiors were on guard against her, afraid that she would rob them of their position. That was why everyone in the office was secretly targeting her, rejecting her, and always in cohorts to land her in trouble. Furthermore, Duncan was a single noble. If he paid too much attention to a woman, that woman will be the thorn in the side of many people. Liberty did not want to fight with them, so she wanted to resign and go with her n to start her own business. Duncan paused before saying, ¡°Who said that? ¡°Liberty, you just do your job. I¡¯ll deal with them. If anyone spreads rumors behind your back about you trying to covet me, I¡¯ll fire them all. Don¡¯t think I¡¯ll let them go just because they have numbers on their side. If they irritate me, I can fire all of them!¡± He gave Liberty this job because of Zachary anyway, so technically, it was notpletely false to say that Liberty entered through the back door. However, it was outrageous to say that Liberty was coveting him. She had just divorced. How could she covet him? Duncan was a busy man and did not want to care about the petty in¨Cfighting among his employees. However, he still had to take care of it if it went too far. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis, but I still want to resign. I got a sum of money from Hank, so I want to invest in opening a small shop and starting a restaurant.¡± Liberty insisted on resigning. Since Duncan said what he said, she dared believe that as soon as she walked out of this office, his order would be conveyed to every corner of thepany and the rumors might not reach her ears anymore. However, the others¡® opinion of her would still be skewed. She did not want to drag Duncan¡¯s reputation down with her. ¡°In that case, have you found a store?¡± Duncan thought about it and said, ¡°There¡¯s a street called Westring Avenue 2 that¡¯s near our office. We have to pass by that street to get to our building. Half of the stores on that street are mine. There¡¯s a lot of traffic there, and apart from Lewis & Co., many smallpanies and factories are in the vicinity. It¡¯ll be quite suitable for you to open up a restaurant there. ¡°There¡¯s an old couple who are too old to work anymore. They¡¯ve retired and are going to move out in a few days. If you really n to go through with it, I can rent that storefront to you.¡± Liberty was stunned. ¡°Half of the shops on that street belong to you?¡± Duncan asked rhetorically, ¡°Why not? I have nowhere to spend the money I earn, so I bought a few more stores to rent them out. The monthly rent is pretty substantial, so I¡¯m using money to make more money.¡± Liberty was speechless. The world of the rich is something unfathomable to Liberty. ¡°I usually don¡¯t bother with the stores and hire someone to collect the rent for me, but I have to pass by there every day when Imute, so I¡¯m aware if there are any empty lots.¡± Aunt Audrey said that Duncan was excellent at making money. She was not wrong about him. Chapter 617 Chapter 617 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 617 ¡°What do you think? Do you want to rent it? If you do, I¡¯ll give you a discount since you¡¯re Zachary¡¯s sister-inw. Your rent will be a little cheaper than others, but don¡¯t tell anyone else. If they find out, they¡¯lle to me asking for a discount as well. That would be a huge loss.¡± Liberty was immensely touched. She had to cross that street every day to and from work, so she knew very well how much traffic that street held. Snackbars, restaurants, and even dessert stores over there had a remarkable business. She had been incredibly envious of those who could rent a shop lot and open a business on that street. Unexpectedly, those shopfronts belonged to Duncan. ¡°How much is the monthly rent?¡± ¡°All stores in downtown Wiltspoon are much more expensive than other ces. Among the stores I have there, the smallest is about forty square feet, and therger ones are more than a hundred square feet. What kind of eatery are you nning to open?¡± ¡°A breakfast store.¡± ¡°Then you don¡¯t need that big of a space. The price of breakfast isn¡¯t extravagant, so you can just rent one with a size of forty to fifty square feet. I¡¯ll ask the old couple who are retiring how big their store is. ¡°You can just pay me eight thousand for the monthly rent, but you have to keep it a secret and don¡¯t tell anyone. I charge others over ten thousand a month.¡± Liberty nodded repeatedly. ¡°I won¡¯t tell anyone, Mr. Duncan, but will it be a great loss for you if you charge me so little?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve earned back the capital I spent to buy those stores long ago. Now, I turn a profit no matter how much rent I charge, so you don¡¯t have to worry about it. Just do a good job. If you don¡¯t mind, you can take the initiative to increase your rental payment to me after you¡¯ve earned back your capital.¡± He was also a businessman. It was all about interests. Liberty smiled. ¡°Okay. When I get my capital back, I¡¯ll pay you as much as you charge the others. I¡¯ll take your store, Mr. Lewis. I¡¯ll go back and notify my superior about my resignation now.¡± ¡°All right. I¡¯ll have someone contact you to sign the contractter.¡± Duncan acted decisively. ¡°If you want to stop working before your probation period is over, tell your manager. She¡¯ll calcte your work attendance and prorate your sry ordingly.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty thanked him from the bottom of her heart. ¡°You¡¯re wee. I¡¯m only giving you a discount because of your brother-inw. I¡¯ll patronize your breakfast store to support you when you¡¯re open for business.¡± He heard from Zachary that the Hunt sisters were great cooks. ¡°I¡¯ll go back and resign now, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty came in with a cold face but went out with a smile. When she left, Duncan picked up his phone and sent a voice message to Zachary. ¡°Zachary, your sister-inw quit. She wants to open a breakfast ce. I happen to have a store on Westring Avenue 2 that can be vacated, so I rented it to her for a lower price.¡± Again, it took Zachary a long time to reply. Only one word came from Zachary. [Thanks.] Duncan breathed a sigh of relief. ¡°He didn¡¯t say much, but at least he¡¯s willing to reply to me. I thought that the iceberg was ignoring me because I messed up.¡± He rented out a store in exchange for one word from Zachary, but it enabled him to finally work at ease. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Meanwhile, something was happening in the managing director¡¯s office at Waltham Electronics. ¡°Hank, what the hell is going on? All the clients you¡¯re responsible for have either canceled their orders or suspended our partnerships. Many of them have alsoined about receiving goods that had a lot of defects mixed in. Are you even doing your job?¡± Hank was so chastised by his boss that he did not dare to speak. Chapter 618 Chapter 618 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 618 ¡°Tell me, Hank. Did you offend all your clients? what did you do?¡± Hank managed to secure plenty of business and made a lot of money for thepany. He entered Waltham Electronics as soon as he graduated and worked here for many years, so he was considered a tenured employee. The boss trusted and relied heavily on him. There were numerous managers in thepany, but Hank was the youngest. He was promoted to the position of a manager because he brought great profits to thepany. Although the management was jealous, they could not say anything about it. The boss attached great importance to Hank. If he was invited to a business reception but was unavable to attend, he would ask Hank to go in his stead to see the world and attract more customers for thepany. Hank did not let him down either. After attending the business reception, he indeed got to sign many more orders for thepany. However, now, all the orders that Hank signed were either canceled or had their cooperation suspended . Although there were other clients who changed their minds, the way Hank¡¯s clients changed their minds was more pronounced. ¡°I didn¡¯t offend the clients, sir. I¡¯ve always put the clients first. How could I have done something to offend them?¡± Hank exined, ¡°I¡¯ll talk to the clients again. I¡¯ll try my best to salvage the orders and cut losses.¡± ¡°You¡¯ve already said that several times, but it didn¡¯t work at all . Waltham has never experienced such a big crisis. The workers in the workshops are going to have to take their annual leaves prematurely this year. If you don¡¯t salvage the orders, we won¡¯t even need to start work after New Year¡¯s because there won¡¯t be any orders to work on! ¡°Think carefully, Hank. Have you ever offended anyone? The situation now makes it obvious that thepany is deliberately being suppressed. We originally stood on par andpeted with a branch of York Corporation. ¡°Now that we¡¯re being suppressed, our business is being taken away by them.¡± He was furious, to say the least! Hank had been struggling to salvage the orders recently. The boss was also anxious. He knew that they were being targeted and deliberately suppressed, but he had no clue who was behind it. The clients refused to disclose the truth and only said that they could no longer cooperate with Waltham Electronics. Waltham Electronics could not even get an idea who was targeting them because the one suppressing them was doing everything to ensure that. Hank wiped the cold sweat on his forehead and said, ¡°I really didn¡¯t offend anyone, sir.¡± If he had to say he offended someone, it would be his ex-wife, Liberty. However, Liberty was not capable of suppressing him. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Although Liberty found her aunt, who was the missus to the head of Stone Group, that was only confirmed yesterday. However, thepany had lost orders for several days already. It had nothing to do with the stone Group. His boss stared at him for a long time and said, ¡°Think about it again and figure out who you crossed.¡± Hank did not dare speak again. While wiping the sweat off his forehead, he walked out of the managing director¡¯s office and back to his own. Jessica saw his badplexion and poured him a cup of warm water, asking with concern, ¡°what did the boss want with you?¡± ¡°What else could he want? He scolded me.¡± Hank sat down on the chair and took two sips from the cup of water that Jessica poured for him, and said, ¡°The boss said that we¡¯re obviously being suppressed and targeted. He asked me if I had offended anyone. ¡°I just can¡¯t think of anyone I¡¯ve offended. I¡¯ve always tried to please my clients. How could I possibly offend them?¡± Ring ring ring¡­ His cell phone rang. It was from Olivia. ¡°Hank, I miss Sonny. Go to Serenity¡¯s store after work to pick him up.¡± Chapter 619 Chapter 619 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 619 Olivia was in deep remorse after she found out that Liberty had an aunt who married into a wealthy family. She should not have let her son divorce. If her son did not divorce, he could rely on nepotism to work in Stone Group, and his ie would grow even higher. Maybe he could even earn tens of millions a year. She advised her son to pursue Liberty again and remarry Liberty but was sternly rejected. Jessica was downright displeased. Olivia stopped proposing the idea explicitly and thought of using her grandson instead. She thought of making her son pick up Sonny often, and then send Sonny back to Liberty. That way, Hank would be able to meet Liberty frequently. They had known each other for twelve years and had a son connecting them, so maybe they would be able to remarry after they calmed down. ¡°Mom, tell Chelsea to drive you to Serenity¡¯s store if you miss Sonny. There¡¯s no need to pick Sonny up. You guys can¡¯t coax him anyway, what if you scare him again?¡± Hank knew what his mother was nning. He was also extremely surprised that Liberty¡¯s aunt was Audrey, but he did not regret divorcing Liberty. His true love was Jessica. He wanted to be with Jessica and intended to go to the City Hall N?velDrama.Org owns this text. after New Year¡¯s to get their marriage license on Valentine¡¯s Day. After that, he would have a wedding. He would do everything he promised Jessica. ¡°I¡¯m busy, Mom. Let¡¯s talk about it when I get back.¡± Hank did not want to listen to his mother¡¯s nagging and hung up the phone before she could start. As soon as he looked up, he saw Jessica¡¯s discontented face. He quickly pulled her over and let her sit on hisp. ¡°Don¡¯t care about what my mom says, Jessica. I won¡¯t change. The person I love is you. I¡¯m the one who¡¯s going to marry you, not my mom.¡± ¡°Your mom and sister regret it now because Liberty has a very rich aunt. She¡¯s so lucky. How could she be Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece? Everyone knows that Mrs. stone had been searching for her sister for decades. ¡°Now that they¡¯ve found the Hunt sisters, they¡¯ll definitely give the sisters a lot of help. Maybe they¡¯ll buy a house and car for the sisters, or give them hundreds of millions in savings.¡± Jessica turned into a green-eyed monster because of Liberty. Why did she not have an incredibly rich aunt as well? ¡°Don¡¯t care about my mom and sister. They don¡¯t know better and think that Liberty has it good just because she has a very rich aunt. In fact, the richer someone is, the stingier they are.¡± Jessica turned to face him and wrapped her arms around his neck. Coquettishly she said, ¡°Hank, tomorrow is the weekend. Will you apany me home to meet my parents?¡± ¡°Of course.¡± Hank said indulgently, ¡°I¡¯ll give you money after work this afternoon. You go buy some gifts your family likes. Tomorrow, I¡¯ll go home with you to meet your parents. ¡°When wee back, remember to take your personal documents as well. We¡¯ll register for our marriage license on Valentine¡¯s Day.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Jessica happily offered him a kiss. The two of them made out in the office for a while before Hank gently pushed her away. ¡°Let¡¯s work first. I still have to go to the clients and try my best to recover the orders. You cane with me.¡± Jessica hummed. ¡°I¡¯m your secretary. Of course, I have to apany you.¡± The two of them soon left the office together. Serenity had no idea that her husband had already suppressed Waltham Electronics. She spent the whole day weaving her handicrafts, neither calling nor sending a single message to Zachary. Her sister came back in the afternoon. Serenity knew that her sister quit her job to start her own business and supported her sister¡¯s decision. ¡°We¡¯re getting along well, Liberty. There¡¯s no conflict.¡± Serenity was hiding the truth. Chapter 620 Chapter 620 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 620 Serenity did not want her sister to worry. Liberty saw that Serenity looked normal, so she was relieved and said, ¡°Zachary treats you very well. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. I think he won¡¯t quarrel with you over something trivial. I¡¯m relieved that you two didn¡¯t get into a fight.¡± Serenity thought in her heart, ¡®As it turned out, he actually did quarrel with me over something trivial.¡¯ He ignored her the whole day. She refused to take the initiative to be friendly with him again. She did not feel like she was at fault. The first time they fought, she did not have feelings for him. The second time, when he saw Shawn confess to her, she did not think it through and panicked, chasing him all the way to his office to offer him an exnation. Now, she felt incredibly upset. Maybe it was because she had grown some feelings for him. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll take Sonny home. I¡¯ve decided to open a store. I have to start nning.¡± ¡°Okay, take Mrs. Lane with you so that Sonny doesn¡¯t bother you.¡± Liberty epted her sister¡¯s arrangement. Sonny was especially naughty when he was in a familiar environment, so she needed another person to help look after him. Mrs. Lane wanted to stay. She overheard Serenity and Jasmine talking about going to a bar for a couple of drinks at night. She wanted to know which bar Serenity was going to, but Serenity arranged for her to follow Liberty home. Thus, Mrs. Lane could only obey lest Serenity became suspicious. ¡°Mrs. Lane, you can drive my sister and Sonny home.¡± Serenity picked up her car keys and handed them to Mrs. Lane. ¡°I¡¯ll take Jasmine¡¯s carter.¡± ¡®Wait, we¡¯ll be taking a cab to the barter. We can¡¯t drive since we¡¯ll be drinking.¡¯ ¡°Okay.¡± Mrs. Lane took the car keys and followed Liberty and Sonny out of the store. After arriving at Liberty¡¯s ce, she took the opportunity to go to the bathroom and sent a message to Zachary. [Mr. Zachary, the missus is going to the bar to have a few drinks with Ms. Sox tonight.] Zachary worked throughout the night until morning, and he finally reached his limit at noon. He leaned back in his chair and fell asleep. He received the message from Mrs. Lane, but he was in a deep sleep and did not hear the notification chime, so no reply from him. Mrs. Lane did not receive a response, but since she had told him about the situation, it was up to him to deal with it. In the afternoon, grade 9 and 12¡¯s students were thest to leave school. Those who still needed to buy school materials, winter vacation homework, or stationery swarmed to the bookstore. After a busy episode, calm returned to the store at seven o¡¯clock. Jasmine moved a shelf back inside and said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, which bar do you want to go to for a drink?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not familiar with bars, so you choose. Most importantly, it has to be crowded and lively.¡± Serenity had only been to a bar twice before, and secretly at that. Even so, she did not dare drink because she was afraid of being scolded by her sister when she went home. Now that she was living separately from her sister and was in a bad mood, she dared go to a bar for drinks and let off some steam. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll treat you to thergest and most exclusive bar in Wiltspoon, Neon Nights.¡± After Jasmine put away the shelf, she leaned into her best friend¡¯s ear and grinned, ¡°The hostesses there are gorgeous, and the hosts are knockouts. Even the bartenders look attractive.¡± ¡°I¡¯m going there to drink, not to find a new side piece.¡± Jasmine giggled. ¡°That¡¯s true. Your husband is much better looking than they are. Let¡¯s just go for a drink and not to see handsome men.¡± ¡°Jas, are you there?¡± A familiar shout was suddenly heard. The two girls¡¯ expressions sank at the same time. Chapter 621 Chapter 621 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 621 ¡°Don¡¯t go out, Seren. I¡¯ll deal with him,¡± Jasmine said before rushing to the entrance of the bookshop to stop Shawn. Grabbing him by the arm, Jasmine yanked him away. ¡°Jas.¡± Forced to keep up with his cousin¡¯s footsteps, Shawn tried to put a brake on the pulling, but Jasmine dragged him all the way to his car with all her might. ¡°Unlock the car door!¡± Jasmine ordered with a stern face. Shawn gave her a rather disgruntled look. ¡°Jas.¡± ¡°I said, unlock the car door!¡± Jasmine sternlymanded. Although she was shorter than Shawn, she stood her ground against the man. Her chilly eyes were fixated on Shawn until thetter unlocked the door. Jasmine opened the door and stuffed him into the car. ¡°Jas, I¡¯m here for you, not Serenity.¡± Forced to take the passenger seat, Shawn watched as his cousin buckled him up. ¡°Sit tight and don¡¯t get out of the car!¡± Jasmine ordered and shut the car door before getting into the car from the other side. She moved quickly and decisively as she started the car and drove away with Shawn when Serenity emerged from the shop. Serenity did not look too pleased. After all that was said to Shawn, he still came looking for her. Was Shawn trying to drive her to move her shop elsewhere orpelling her and Jasmine to break off their partnership? It was a good thing that the term break was starting tomorrow, so there was no need for Serenity to be at the shop. She could work on her crafts at home. Serenity soon looked away and continued packing up. She moved the disy racks at the door into the shop. Jasmine sped all the way. Despite Shawn¡¯s attempts to break the silence, Jasmine refused to say a word. ¡°Jas.¡± Shawn uttered peevishly, ¡°Where are you taking me? I¡¯m talking to you! Why are you ignoring me? I can¡¯t have feelings for Serenity anymore, but does that mean I can¡¯t see my own cousin?¡± ¡°Don¡¯te to the shop if Serenity is there.¡± Tilting her head, Jasmine red at him. ¡°Shawn, are you trying to force Serenity to move. her shop elsewhere or sever our business partnership?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Shawn turned pale in the face and replied stubbornly, ¡°I didn¡¯t know Serenity was at the shop, Jas. I¡¯ve been having it tough at work. I just want to confide in you.¡± He had always had a great rtionship with his cousin. Shawn would seek his cousin to stand up for him whenever he experienced a rough patch. Sure, he had a lot of male cousins, but he had no guts to go straight to them. Shawn would let Jasmine know, and Jasmine would notify the male cousins, so everybody would band up to stick up for him.) His parents were nice to Jasmine¡¯s family, not just because they were family, but also because Jasmine was supportive, helpful, and protective toward him more than other family members do. Chapter 622 Chapter 622 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 622 Jasmine had always had Shawn¡¯s back through thick and thin. His cousin was in the position to give him the upper hand at getting the woman of his dreams. However, not only was Jasmine not supportive, but she was against it for the first time ever. She stopped him. and even yelled at him. Shawn was in agony, unable to obtain the woman he loved. The fact that his closest cousin did not support him only added to the pain. ¡°I¡¯m all ears if you want to talk to me about your work. You can call me or go to my ce. I¡¯m not working tomorrow since it¡¯s the weekend. What do you want to talk about? I can give you the whole day to pour out your feelings. ¡°I mean, of course, things aren¡¯t going well for you at work. Is your focus on your work? All you think about is pestering Serenity. I told you a million times. Serenity¡¯s married and doesn¡¯t have that kind of feelings for you. What¡¯s the point of getting all over her face? ¡°You¡¯re only chipping away what¡¯s left of your friendship with her. She and her husband have gotten into two arguments because of you. You won¡¯t feel bad about it, but I do.¡± Tilting his head, Shawn looked at the fleeting scenery of the bustling cityscape outside the window. Although many traveled home to be with their families as the new year closed in, a lot stayed to party in the city. ¡°I can¡¯t help myself, Jas. I know it¡¯s wrong, and people will call me a homewrecker toe. in between Serenity and her husband, but I simply can¡¯t help myself. I just want to see her. I¡¯m happy to look at her without talking. ¡°I¡¯ve known her for over a decade, yet I be a homewrecker¡­ Zachary should be the homewrecker. It had only been a few months since he knew Serenity. Why did he get to overtake me?¡± Jasmine would pull Shawn under a running faucet and pin his head under for a drench to wake him up if she was not driving right now. ¡°Love is not about long you know the girl, but about connections. You and Serenity are not meant to be. So what if you guys know each other your whole life? You and Serenity wouldn¡¯t work out even if Zachary wasn¡¯t in the picture. Why can¡¯t you get it in your head? Why are you so hung up about the duration? ¡°Serenity doesn¡¯t love you, and that¡¯s the most crucial point. Zachary has nothing on you if she loves you. She only sees you as a brother.¡± Shawn tugged on his hair with anguish. ¡°Jas, I don¡¯t want to be her brother. I¡¯m not rted to her by blood at all. I just want to give it a go, Jas. I won¡¯t be able to get over it without. going for it.¡± ¡°How do you intend to give it a go? Hasn¡¯t Serenity made it clear to you? ¡°What? Do you n to broadcast to the world that you¡¯re wooing her?¡± Shawn was speechless. That had crossed his mind. ¡°You hadn¡¯t listened to a word I said to you, Shawn. Your love for Serenity is hurting her. Not only are you causing arguments for the couple, but your parents, too, will never agree. to let you go after Serenity. ¡°Your family can¡¯t ept the rtionship, and you don¡¯t have the means to make it out there on your own. Your constant pestering will only bring harm to Serenity. Are you calling this love? ¡°Shawn, love is not possessive. It¡¯s letting go. You should wish her the best if you truly love. her. You¡¯ll be happy when she¡¯s happy, even if she¡¯s not with you.¡± Shawn was without a word. Realizing that Jasmine was driving to his house, Shawn asked, ¡°Are you taking me home, Jas?¡± ¡°I¡¯m taking you home. My aunt must still be at home at this time. I want to show you your mom¡¯s reaction when she finds out that you like Serenity. You¡¯ll understand what your love for Serenity would bring.¡± At first, Jasmine had no intention of letting her aunt know about Shawn¡¯s feelings for Serenity. Jasmine knew her aunt well enough to expect a bacsh after her aunt learned the whole thing. However, due to Shawn¡¯s constant harassment of Serenity, Jasmine had to tell her aunt. and break Shawn¡¯s heart in the cruelest way. With his mother¡¯s good opinion of Serenity in mind, Shawn responded, ¡°My mom will be happy. She loves Serenity.¡± Jasmine smirked. All she could say was that Shawn was green and had a lot to learn about his mother.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 623 Chapter 623 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 623 Jasmine dashed all the way to Shawn¡¯s family home. After pulling up, she sent a text message, asking Serenity to wait for her at the shop. She would be back in half an hour. [Sure. ] Serenity replied with a meme. Mrs. Lowe was about to leave home for a social gathering. Her nights were either filled with game nights, social events, or apanying her husband to business dinners. Seeing that her son¡¯s ride was parked outside the house, Mrs. Lowe was taken aback by her niece getting out of the car. She smiled. ¡°Jasmine, what brings you here with Shawn?¡± Mrs. Lowe then said to her son who had stepped out of the car. ¡°Your dad said that you disappeared right after work. Shawn, your father¡¯s busier than ever. You should be helping him. ¡± Her husband mentioned that thepanies under Lowe Enterprise that had partnerships with York Corporation previously were discontinued for some reason. York Corporation ended these partnerships on their ord. Out of the few projects under talks, York Corporation jumped in minutes before two projects were signed. There was the possibility for projects and developments to fall through in business. However, York Corporation¡¯s tant act of ending partnerships and stealing Lowe Enterprise¡¯s projects was telling the world that York Corporation was against Lowe Enterprise. Lowe Enterprise and York Corporation¡¯s coborations were minor developments as bothpanies were in different industries. However, York Corporation was sending a message to the world that put Lowe Enterprise in the spotlight. Many wanted to know whether Lowe Enterprise had upset York Corporation. No one would dare go up against York Corporation, except Stone Group. That was because Stone Group and its CEO were sessful and in the same league as Zachary. It would be a suicide mission for Lowe Enterprise to challenge York Corporation as thepany was not even ahead of Stone Group. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. There were people betting on how long Lowe Enterprise wouldst against York. Corporation. Mrs. Lowe knew her husband had responded to the public and rified that there was no bad blood between Lowe Enterprise and York Corporation. Nevertheless, York Corporation had not made any statements. Her husband had been trying to meet withMr. York, but the reply received was that the CEO had no time before the year-end. Mr. York would need to check his schedule in the new year. The GreatMr. York was upied with work, so it was not easy to set up an appointment. Mrs. Lowe believed all was not lost as an appointment could be set next year. The GreatMr. York had demonstrated his fondness for her son during thest social event and both. of them exchanged a few words, which helped solidify her son¡¯s position as the heir to Lowe Enterprise. Hence, thepany¡¯s short-term predicament was not a serious worry to Mrs. Lowe. ¡°Mom, I went to look for Jas after work,¡± Shawn exined. Mrs. Lowe told him off, ¡°You love to follow your cousin around since you were little. You¡¯re in your twenties now, but nothing has changed. ¡± ¡°Aunt Rachel, are you heading out?¡± Jasmine walked up the steps to her aunt and checked her out beforeplimenting her, ¡± Your makeup is on-point tonight, Aunt Rachel. You look younger by twenty years. We look like sisters when I stand next to you. ¡± Mrs. Lowe reached out and dabbed Jasmine¡¯s lips. ¡°You just know the right words to say, smooth talker! I¡¯ll look younger without makeup if you can bring me good news like finding. a good man in your life. ¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Aunt Rachel. I expect a huge gift when I get married. ¡± ¡°I have a lot of nieces and nephews, but you¡¯re my favorite. I¡¯ll give you the biggest gift when you get married. I can guarantee you¡¯ll have the wedding of the century!¡± ¡°Don¡¯t be in a hurry to leave, Aunt Rachel. Let¡¯s head back inside. I need to talk to something. ¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Mrs. Lowe asked while making her way back in. you about Chapter 624 Chapter 624 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 624 ¡°Why isn¡¯t my uncle back yet?¡± ¡°He¡¯s at a business dinner. He won¡¯t be back until midnight. ¡± Shawn¡¯s younger sister was still in college. Now that it was winter break, she went traveling with her friends and would be back before the new year. There was no one else at the house. The aunt and niece took a seat on the sofa while Shawn sat beside the pair. He nervously stared at his mother. ¡°What do you want to talk to me about, Jas?¡± ¡°Aunt Rachel, I want to first put it out there that this is not Serenity¡¯s fault. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Please listen to what I have to say before getting mad. You can be mad at your son, but don¡¯t take it out on Serenity. ¡± Jasmine had to first give her aunt a fair warning and assure Serenity¡¯s safety. ¡°I won¡¯te over to your ce if you take it out on Serenity, Aunt Rachel. ¡± Mrs. Lowe replied with a smile, ¡°What is it? You make it sound so somber. Why would I take it out on Serenity? Serenity has been friends with you for years. I watched her grow up. She¡¯s a sensible child. I¡¯m fond of her. Why would I take it out on her? ¡°Tell me what¡¯s going on. What did Shawn do that involved Serenity?¡± Shawn chimed in before Jasmine could say anything. Looking at his mother, he uttered int a serious tone, ¡°Mom, I love Serenity, and I have been for years, but Jas doesn¡¯t support. me in this. She even stopped me from going after Serenity. She said you will never let me be together with Serenity. ¡°Mom, you said you¡¯re fond of Serenity. Do I have your blessing to be with Serenity?¡± The smile on Mrs. Lowe¡¯s face froze. She turned to look at her niece and asked, ¡°Jasmine, isn¡¯t Serenity married?¡± ¡°Yes, she is. She and her husband are getting along well. She has turned Shawn down, but Shawn won¡¯t leave her alone. ¡± Mrs. Lowe then turned to face her son. Shawn stared at his mother expectantly. The next minute, his mother pped him hard on the shoulder. Shawn fell over the armrest of the sofa from impact. ¡°Shawn, is Serenity the only woman left in the world? How could you fall for her? I can¡¯t believe you won¡¯t leave a married woman alone. Have you lost your mind? She¡­¡± Realizing that her niece was here, Mrs. Lowe could not badmouth Serenity. Mrs. Lowe said to her niece, ¡°I got it, Jasmine. You should head back. I¡¯ll have a talk with Shawn. ¡°When did this start, Jas? Was it before or after Serenity got married?¡± ¡°After she got married. ¡± Mrs. Lowe scowled. ¡°Serenity never saw Shawn as more than a brother, Aunt Rachel. I tried to stop Shawn, but he wouldn¡¯t listen to me. Can you talk some sense into him and stop him from harassing Serenity? Serenity and her husband got into a few arguments because of this. ¡± Mrs. Lowe responded, ¡°I see. At least I know where Serenity stands. ¡± She was furious, but it was not Serenity¡¯s fault. Despite her rage, she could not find fault with Serenity. Mrs. Lowe watched Serenity grow up and knew her well enough. Serenity¡¯s feelings for her son were familial like an older sister toward a younger sibling. The way Serenity looked at her son did not carry any romantic sentiments. It never crossed Mrs. Lowe¡¯s mind that her son was the one who had eyes on Serenity. Chapter 625 Chapter 625 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 625 ¡°Aunt Rachel, I didn¡¯t drive and took Shawn¡¯s car here. It¡¯d be great if you could arrange for the chauffeur to drive me back to the shop. ¡± Holding back her anger, Mrs. Lowe summoned a maid to arrange the ride for Jasmine with the chauffeur. Once Jasmine was gone, Mrs. Lowe pped her son andshed out, ¡°Shawn, are you trying to infuriate me? Serenity is three years older than you. She doesn¡¯te from a good family. Are you blind to fall for her?¡± ¡°Aren¡¯t you fond of Serenity, Mom? ¡°So what if she¡¯s older? It¡¯s not like she¡¯s thirty years older than I am. How is it that she doesn¡¯te from a good family? Her family isn¡¯t involved in the mafia. Shees from a family of farmers, not criminals. ¡± Mrs. Lowe grimaced. ¡°I like her and see her as another niece of mine because of Jasmine. I¡¯m only fond of her on the condition that she doesn¡¯t get involved with you. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t have allowed you two to spend time together had I known what was going on in your head. ¡°You better give up on your feelings, Shawn. Even if Serenity wasn¡¯t married, I wouldn¡¯t let anything develop between you two. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Serenity¡¯s rtives are bloodsuckers. Anybody would. be unlucky to be acquainted with that family. ¡°Serenity lost her parents early in life. I admit that she¡¯s a nice girl, but she¡¯s not for you. She doesn¡¯t deserve you. You¡¯re the heir of the Lowe family and the sessor of Lowe Enterprise. Your wife must be someone who is born into privilege. ¡°What can Serenity help you with? Nothing. I won¡¯t allow you to marry someone without social standing. We might ignore her rtives and refuse to see them as inws, but it won¡¯t stop her rtives from using our family name to get around and ride on our coattails. It¡¯ll only give our family a bad name. ¡± Shawn refuted, ¡°I like Serenity, Mom. I¡¯m not asking her for anything, nor do I need her to help me with anything. Everybody knows that she doesn¡¯t get along with her rtives. Those people can¡¯t possibly im to be our inws and destroy our family¡¯s reputation. ¡°Mom, I really, really love Serenity. Can you¡­¡± ¡°No! Don¡¯t ask me for anything! I won¡¯t ever give my blessing so long as it involves Serenity! Besides, Serenity¡¯s married. She has a husband. Your harassment makes you a homewrecker! ¡°I¡¯m warning you, Shawn! Don¡¯t me me for going after Serenity if you continue to pester her. ¡± Color drained from Shawn¡¯s face. ¡°This has nothing to do with Serenity, Mom. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care. Her presence alone has distracted my son and made a homewrecker out of my son. I want to make her pay. I¡¯ll make sure she has to skip town if you¡¯re not going to grow up!¡± Shawn stared at his cruel and heartless mother in shock. Not too long ago, his mother said that she was fond of Serenity. His mother sang a different tune now that she found out about his love for Serenity. ¡°From now on, I¡¯ll have security with you 24/7. I¡¯ll get her shop trashed if I catch you sneaking off to the shop to see Serenity. I¡¯ll force her out of Wiltspoon, together with her sister, her nephew, and her husband. ¡°You better get over your feelings if you really love her and want the best for her, Shawn. Don¡¯t do anything toe in between her marriage, or I¡¯ll have to keep my word!¡± Shawn was as white as a sheet. He stared nkly at his mother, harking back to Jasmine¡¯s words. Jasmine mentioned that despite his mother¡¯s adoration for Serenity, his mother would turn against Serenity the moment the truth was out about his feelings for Serenity. It was true. So, no one was on his side about his thing for Serenity? ¡°Mom¡­¡± Shawn struggled as he said, ¡°Don¡¯t give Serenity a hard time. Please don¡¯t do anything to hurt Serenity. I-I¡¯ll try¡­ I¡¯ll try to let go of my feelings for her. ¡± It did not matter to him to be called a homewrecker for interfering with Serenity¡¯s marriage. Shawn believed he and Serenity were meant to be together since he knew Serenity early in life. The timing was the only thing that held them back. However, he could not bear to watch his mother harm Serenity. Chapter 626 Chapter 626 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 626 There were certain things that although Shawn was unwilling to face, he was aware of them. Serenity did not have an influential figure to lean on, but her mother was Mrs. Lowe. The Lowes were considerably wealthier and more powerful than Serenity. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. There was no way Serenity could survive against his mother¡¯s tactics. The only thing left to do would be to leave Wiltspoon. ¡°I don¡¯t want you to try. You must let go of your feelings for her!¡± Mrs. Lowe ordered. Keeping to her word, Mrs. Lowe summoned two bodyguards and instructed them, ¡°You are to follow Shawn wherever he goes from now on. Report to me if he ever goes near Wiltspoon School. ¡± Shawn turned ashen. Meanwhile, the Lowes¡¯ chauffeur drove Jasmine to the shop. Serenity had moved all the disy racks into the shops and packed up her crafting tools and materials. She even cleared the unfinished groceries out of the fridge and bagged them along with the snacks. She was ready to bring them all back to her house. The shop would stay closed from tomorrow onward and reopen when the term break was over next year. ¡°Are you all packed up, Seren?¡± ¡°All done. Should I put these in your car or collect them tomorrow?¡± ¡°Put them in my car. I¡¯m driving you home anyway. ¡± Serenity started to move the stuff into Jasmine¡¯s car while saying with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re going drinking. How are you going to drive me home? I won¡¯t take a ride in yours if you¡¯re going to drink and drive. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll get a designated driver. ¡± With Jim in mind, Serenity said, ¡°Jim is a designated driver. That man¡¯s pretty reliable. My petty husband even says so. I¡¯ll give him a call once we¡¯re ready to head home, so he can drive us. ¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°It¡¯s okay. I got a designated driver on speed dial. ¡± ¡°Who?¡± ¡°My younger brother. I¡¯ll get him to wait for us at Neon Nights. He has alcohol intolerance, so he won¡¯t be drinking. He won¡¯t abandon us even if we be a drunken mess. ¡°We girls must learn to protect ourselves when drinking at ces like that. Anything can happen when we¡¯re intoxicated. ¡± Jasmine rarely went to bars or that sort. She would call her brother or cousins toe along when she wanted to drink her problems away. That way, Jasmine could let her inhibition go as she drank. There was no worry that someone would take advantage of her during her drunken state. ¡°That¡¯s some good thinking. ¡± Serenityplimented her best friend. She had no brothers, but her cousins would probably sell her off if she ever drank and got wasted with them. If Zachary was around¡­ Why did she have to think about him? That petty guy was the cause of her irritability! Chapter 627 Chapter 627 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 627 Zachary, who was dubbed the petty guy by Serenity, took a few hours of sleep at the office before waking up. He opened his eyes and found a thick jacket draped over him. Removing the jacket, he looked at the time. ¡°It¡¯s nine at night,¡± Zachary cried, unable to believe that he slept that long. There were a few thermal lunch boxes on his desk. It must be the dinner brought by the manager of the subsidiarypany. The manager must have seen him asleep and did not want to wake him. The thick. jacket over Zachary must be from the manager too. . Straightening his back, Zachary sat in silence for a while before heading to the bathroom to freshen himself up with a good ssh of cold water to his face. He walked out of the bathroom several minutester. Having returned to his seat, he opened the food containers. The food was still warm. He sat behind his desk and dug in. Zachary pulled out his phone and checked his messages. Other than the messages from his senior executives about work, his brothers and cousins sent him a few text. messages too. After reading all the messages, Zachary pulled a long face as he received nothing from Serenity. Mrs. Lane said that she was no longer angry. Serenity was either making her crafts at the shop or chatting away with her sister at her sister¡¯s ce. She probably forgot who he was. Zachary was down in the dumps. It was then Zachary noticed an unread text message. He tapped on it. The message was from Mrs. Lane. Mrs. Lane had texted him in the afternoon, but he was too caught up in slumbend to hear the notification. ¡°Mr. Zachary, Ms. Hunt is going drinking at a bar tonight. ¡± The message was only a short sentence, but Zachary scowled and had to ditch food to give Mrs. Lane a call right away. It took a while before Mrs. Lane picked up the call. ¡°I made an excuse to bring out the trash so I could take your call,Mr. Zachary. ¡± Mrs. Lane added, ¡°Why did you only reply to me now,Mr. Zachary? The missus is probably at the bar right. now. ¡± Zachary solemnly asked, ¡°Which bar is she at? I worked all ofst night and couldn¡¯t keep awake by the time afternoon rolled around. I took a nap. I only saw the message now that I woke up. ¡± Mrs. Lane thought to herself, ¡®No wonderMr. Zachary went quiet after I sent the message. It turned out he was asleep. ¡¯ ¡°Where is Serenity drinking?¡± Zachary knew that he was the reason Serenity went drinking at a bar. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. He kind of regretted his action. Why did he have to be petty? He made a fuss because she did not tell him about Liberty being harassed by her former mother-inw. Come to think of it, Zachary was indeed acting petty. Serenity was a rather independent woman. She could not possibly rely on him for every little thing. ¡°I don¡¯t know which bar she has gone to. I overheard she was going for drinks with Ms. Sox to vent their pent-up emotions at a bar. ¡± Following a brief silence, Zachary said, ¡°Okay. I got it. ¡± After ending the call with Mrs. Lane, Zachary immediately gave Josh a call. Once the call was connected, he jumped right to the matter at hand. ¡°Josh, I need to look into the bar that Jasmine and Serenity went drinking at, and how long they¡¯ve been there. ¡± ¡°Jasmine went drinking? Why didn¡¯t she invite me?¡± ¡°Josh!¡± ¡°Alright, alright. I¡¯ll get right to it. I¡¯ll go there and drive them home once I receive word, okay?¡± Josh added, ¡°Why did they go drinking out of the blue? They could¡¯ve told me if they wanted to enjoy a good drink. I can bring out my dad¡¯s treasured wine collection. They didn¡¯t have to go all the way to a bar. ¡± Zachary bit his tongue for a moment before uttering, ¡°I had a fight with Serenity. ¡± Chapter 628 Chapter 628 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 628 Josh had no words. Hemented, ¡°What¡¯s up with you two? You were getting along just fine and giving us front-row seats to your public disy of affection, but now another fight broke out. No wonder Serenity went to a bar. It was all because of you. ¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Look into where they are right now and how long they¡¯ve been there. Are they drunk? Give me a reply if you hear anything back. ¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll get right to it. ¡± Josh swiftly hung up the call and dove into investigating the girls¡¯ whereabouts. While waiting for an answer, Zachary contacted his private ne crew and instructed them, ¡°Prepare to fly back. I want to return to Wiltspoon in a few minutes. ¡± He did not want Serenity to drop him off at the airport when he needed to go away for business. One reason was he had to return to the office, and the second was he did not have a ne ticket ready. Zachary took a private ne abroad. Following Zachary¡¯sst-minute notice, the crew started flight preparations. After taking care of his arrangements, Zachary started to call Serenity. Serenity, Jasmine, and her younger brother, Drake, were having a st at the bar. Since Drake could not drink, he sat in a corner and watched the twodies take one drink after another. Serenity, in particr, was just downing drinks. He had to say something, ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t drink too much. You¡¯re looking rather red in the face. I don¡¯t think you can handle that much liquor. You¡¯re going to get wasted. ¡± Serenity answered with a smile, ¡°Alcohol is the answer to all your problems. I want to get drunk for a change and forget about Zachary!¡± Drake looked at his sister. Patting her brother on the shoulder, Jasmine said, ¡°Serenity¡¯s feeling down. I¡¯m under orders to drink with. her tonight. Just watch us. Don¡¯t try to talk her out of it. Let her drink her problems away. Tomorrow, she¡¯ll wake up with a horrible headache, sores, and an awful feeling in the gut. That¡¯s her problem for drowning. her sorrows. ¡± Drake was speechless. Serenity hooked her arm over her best friend¡¯s shoulder. ¡°You know me best, Jas. Today, we drink. We¡¯ll leave the worries until tomorrow. ¡± She did not want to think about the consequences of getting drunk. Serenity was feeling depressed. She could keep all her emotions under wraps during the day. However, like many others who unleashed their madness in the bar, Serenity could not hold in the pent- up emotions and proceeded to free her hair. Ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. ¡°It might be my sister. ¡± Serenity gestured for Jasmine and her brother to keep it down as she whipped out her phone. It was Zachary. Furrowing her brows, she handed the phone to Jasmine and let out a hup before asking her best friend, ¡°Jas, the petty guy is calling me now. ¡°He won¡¯t even take my calls or answer my texts. Should I even take his call?¡± Although Jasmine had a couple of drinks, she was still lucid. Jasmine replied, ¡°You decide whether you want to take or decline the call. I can¡¯t decide for you. ¡± Zachary would me her if he were to find out. Jasmine would not be able to talk her way out of it. ¡°No. He should get a taste of rejection. ¡± Serenity rejected Zachary¡¯s call. Nevertheless, Zachary immediately dialed her number again. She terminated the call once more. Zachary called, and she hung up. After several times, Zachary appeared rather grimacing.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Chapter 629 Chapter 629 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 629 Zachary gave up on dialing Serenity¡¯s number. A call from Josh could note at a better time. ¡°Where are they drinking, Josh?¡± Zachary went right to the question the moment the call was connected. Hearing the anxiousness in his tone, Josh took the chance to tease Zachary. ¡°Feeling desperate? Do you have ants in your pants? Can¡¯t wait to get back here?¡± ¡°Josh!¡± This was the worst possible time to make fun of him. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Zachary was so desperate, he wished he had wings to fly all the way back to Wiltspoon. Josh chuckled. ¡°I couldn¡¯t pass up on the chance. Only Serenity can bring the anxiousness out of you. ¡± Zachary had always remained stoic in the face of adversity. To get Zachary restless was not something Josh could see every day. ¡°They¡¯re at Neon Nights. They arrived half an hour ago. Jasmine and her young brother are with Serenity. ¡± Zachary frowned. ¡°How old is Jasmine¡¯s brother?¡± Why did Jasmine have so many brothers? Although Shawn was her cousin, they shared a sibling-like rtionship. Shawn only knew Serenity and got the hots for Serenity through her best friend, Jasmine. Zachary did not want another love rival toe along. ¡°About three to four years younger than Jasmine. He¡¯s at a legal age. Why do you ask? This is something I should be concerned about since I can win over her brother to ept me as his future brother-inw. ¡°Oh, I get it. You asked because of Shawn. You¡¯re wary of Jasmine¡¯s younger male family members. ¡± Zachary uttered peevishly, ¡°You can¡¯t understand how I feel since you don¡¯t have love rivals. ¡± Josh replied, ¡°The way you say it¡­¡± He was at a loss for words. ¡°Neon Nights? I think the owner of the bar is the head of your household. ¡± The bar had a mixture of good and bad crowd, but it was a great ce to get word on thetest. ¡°Yeah. It¡¯s one of my brother¡¯s businesses. That¡¯s how I was able to find out this quickly. By now, I guess Serenity must have had at least six sses of alcohol. How¡¯s her alcohol tolerance? Can she hold her liquor?¡± Zachary solemnly uttered, ¡°I¡¯m heading back right now. ¡± He then hung up on Josh. Josh stared at the disconnected phone and mumbled to himself with a smile, ¡°I finally get to see him squirm. ¡± Putting his phone into his pocket, Josh picked up his car keys and headed out the door. He was going to Neon Nights. He wanted to chance an encounter with Jasmine to see if he had the privilege to drive her home. Serenity was still at Neon Nights. ¡°How many have I had?¡± Serenity counted the empty sses. ¡°Jas, I think I can have a few more. Strange. I would usually sleep like a log after two bottles of beer, but I don¡¯t feel anything after taking a few sses now. I want to get wasted. At least I¡¯ll get to sleep until morning light. ¡°Jas, did you order me fake alcohol?¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°Neon Nights is the biggest and most luxurious bar in Wiltspoon. The customers here are of certain social standing. Not everybody can afford this ce. ¡°How could the ce sell fake alcohol? You have a lot on your mind. You¡¯ll only feel the kick from this sort of liquorter. You might feel nothing now, but the alcohol will hit you hardter. You¡¯ll be knocked out until tomorrow afternoon. ¡°Still, you should stop now. Your sister will yell at you when she finds out. ¡± Although the sisters were close, Liberty would not hesitate to give Serenity a piece of her mind when thetter did something wrong. Jasmine had the pleasure of witnessing Libertyy it down on Serenity. The way Liberty came at Serenity was fiercer than Jasmine¡¯s mom toward herself. Serenity replied reluctantly, ¡°I¡¯ll stop after a couple more drinks. ¡± Jasmine sighed. ¡°Two more drinks, and you¡¯ll be knocked out cold. ¡± Chapter 630 Chapter 630 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 630 ¡°I¡¯m still sober. Another couple of drinks won¡¯t make me drunk. ¡± ¡°You should quit while you¡¯re at it. ¡°We came here to have a drink or two. Too much is not good for you. ¡± Serenity stared at her eerily. Jasmine fell silent for a moment before getting up to leave. She reminded her brother to watch Serenity. A whileter, Jasmine returned with a pen, papers, and a ss of wine in hand. ¡°This is yourst drink. I asked for a few sheets of paper for you to draw on. ¡± ¡°Jas, Serenity¡¯s drunk. Can she still draw?¡± Serenity imed that she was sober but the truth was, she was drunk. Instead of answering his brother¡¯s question, Jasmine handed the pen and papers to Serenity. Serenity took the stuff and started drawing on the paper without taking the drink. First, she drew a ball. Drake was speechless. It was not hard to draw a circle in a drunken state. Drake believed it was a no-brainer. Serenity then drew ake with way too many wavy lines along the shore. Following that, she portrayed a -person standing before theke. Drake watched with amazement. ¡°Does Serenity like to draw after she gets drunk, Jas?¡± Jasmine nodded her head. ¡°Give her a pen and paper when she wants to rant but can¡¯t. She¡¯ll let it all out through her doodles. ¡± Drake was lost for words. Some people were in weird. It was a good thing Jasmine knew Serenity well because Drake would not be able to figure her out. Serenity put a lot of thought into drawing the silhouette of a person. Jasmine did not need to get close to guess Serenity was drawing Zachary. Drawn by curiosity, Drake watched as Serenity doodled on the paper. Serenity portrayed the upper half of Zachary¡¯s body on the paper. Once she was done, she took a look and added a heart to his chest. Nevertheless, she penciled the heart rather tiny. Putting down the pen, she grabbed her untouched wine and admired her artwork while sipping it. Serenity believed she brought the character to life as she was not usually good at portraits. Picking the paper up for a look, Jasmine praised, ¡°You¡¯ve reached a breakthrough at drawing portraits, Seren. The drawing is very lifelike. You brought out Mr. York¡¯s callous eyes and deadpan face. It¡¯s like I¡¯m looking at a photograph. ¡± She knew that her best friend was able to breathe life into a portrait of Zachary because Serenity had apter 6:30 fallen in love with him. ¡°Jas, did Serenity draw a river or ake? What¡¯s with the wavy lines?¡± Tilting her head, Jasmine looked at her brother. ¡°Are you blind? Can¡¯t you tell whether it¡¯s a river or ake? ¡°Serenity portrayed everything well, but you can¡¯t tell the difference. You should cut down your time onputer games. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. They¡¯re not good for your eyes. Get Mom to buy you supplements. ¡± Drake grabbed the drawing from his sister and mumbled, ¡°It¡¯s too small for ake and too short to be a river. I really can¡¯t tell whether it¡¯s a river or ake. ¡±. ¡°Look at the ripple-like lines against the shore. What happens when you have water and dirt? What does it be?¡± ¡°You¡¯ll get soil with a slimy texture. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s right, slime. ¡± ¡°So the ball¡­ Slimeball?¡± Drake lifted his head and stared at Serenity. Thetter was busy drinking her wine while Jasmine kept to herself. He looked at Zachary¡¯s portrait, finally getting the message hidden within. However, Drake wondered who the man was. Serenity-called the man a slimeball. Chapter 631 Chapter 631 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 631 ¡°Is that you, Ms. Sox?¡± a voice interrupted the trio. Jasmine and her brother turned their heads toward the source of the voice. Serenity calmly drank her wine as though she did not see Josh. ¡°Mr. Bucham?¡± Jasmine was surprised to find Josh here. Josh exined, ¡°I got together with a few buddies to let loose here since it¡¯s the weekend. I wasn¡¯t expecting to see you here, Ms. Sox. ¡°Do you mind if I sit here?¡± Jasmine replied with a smile, ¡°Well, you already sat down. Are you waiting for your friends?¡± She saw that he was alone. Josh sat down and said hello to Serenity. Serenity merely bobbed her head as an acknowledgment to his greeting. ¡°My friends have left. ¡± Looking at the drawing, Josh asked Jasmine, ¡°Who drew this? Can I have a closer look?¡± With Jasmine¡¯s eyes turning to her best friend, Josh got an idea of the artist behind the artwork. Serenity went on drinking without a word. Taking it as a no, Josh did not pick the drawing up, but he was still able to get a good look at it. He could tell that it was a portrait of Zachary. Josh had to admit that Serenity had a gift for art. She brought Zachary¡¯s portrait to life. Only thing was, she deliberately drew a heart outside Zachary¡¯s chest, and it was tiny¡­ Was she saying that Zachary had a tiny heart? Was that ake or a river behind Zachary¡¯s portrait? There were wavy lines along the shore. What did that mean? There was a ball too. Josh stared at the drawing and then at Serenity. Seeing that Serenity was scarlet on the cheeks and hazy in the eyes, he knew that she was out of it. ¡°Ms. Hunt, you must be the artist. This is a masterpiece. ¡± The meaning behind the artwork should be- Zachary was a water ball! Hang on! Josh took a closer look at the drawing. Was Zachary ake ball? River ball? Wavy ball? He stared hard and long at the drawing until it finally hit him. A slimeball. Ha! The missus sure had a way with name-calling. She criticized people through her drawings. Josh would have taken out his phone to take a picture and show Zachary if Jasmine and her brother were not around. He got to give it to the woman who captured Zachary¡¯s heart. She was different, that was for sure. ¡°Ms. Sox, and this is?¡± After appreciating the beauty of Serenity¡¯s artwork, Josh went on to ask about Drake. ¡°My brother. ¡± Jasmine answered without sharing her brother¡¯s name with Josh. It appeared she did not want Josh to interact too much with her brother. Smiling tenderly, Josh put his hand out to Drake and politely exchanged a handshake. He introduced himself, ¡°Mr. Sox, I¡¯m Josh Bucham. I went on a blind date with your sister. ¡± Jasmine turned around, wanting to refute. However, it was a fact that she went on a blind date with Josh. She could not argue with that. ¡°Hello,Mr. Bucham. I¡¯m Drake. You had a blind date with my sister?¡± Drake turned to his sister, seeking verification through his gaze. Seeing that his sister smiled without a smile, he knew that it was true. He leaned forward to whisper in his sister¡¯s ear. ¡°When did you go on a blind date withMr. Bucham, Jas? Is he the one Mom said was a great guy? I thinkMr. Bucham is nice. He gave me a good first impression. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡± Jasmine pinched her brother¡¯s thigh under the table while hissing through clenched teeth. ¡°We¡¯ll talk at home. ¡± She then asked Josh with a grin, ¡°Do youe here often,Mr. Bucham?¡± ¡°No. This is my first time here. I heard Neon Nights was a great ce, so I invited a few buddies over here. for drinks as it¡¯s been a while since I didn¡¯t have to work over the weekend. I wanted to check out the scene if it was as good as rumored. ¡± Jasmine did not buy the story but said nothing more. Suddenly, Serenity sprawled on the table. The alcohol finally caught up to her, and she was gone. Chapter 632 Chapter 632 Chapter 632 ¡°Seren. ¡± Jasmine immediately went to help Serenity up. ¡°I can still drink¡­¡± Despite being held up, Serenity was mumbling away about having more drinks. Looking at the state Serenity was in, Josh did not feel right to pull out his phone and take a video of her. Nevertheless, there was security surveince in the ce. He could pull the security footage and show it to Zachary. Zachary married a wonderful wife but could do better at cherishing her. They often fought and got into silent wars while the people around him were dragged into the crossfire. ¡°You¡¯re drunk, Serenity. I¡¯ll take you home. ¡± Jasmine got up and said to Josh apologetically, ¡°Serenity had too much to drink, Mr. Buchan. I¡¯m going to take her home now. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t think you can drive since you had something to drink too. I didn¡¯t drink, so I can drive you home. ¡± As Josh came here for Jasmine, he did not have a drop of alcohol. He was looking for a chance to get Jasmine in his car. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Bucham, but we won¡¯t be needing it. My brother can drive. I called him here to be the responsible driver and take us girls home. He didn¡¯t and can¡¯t drink. He has alcohol intolerance. ¡± Josh was speechless. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. He came all this way, thinking he would be able to take Jasmine home and earn her favor. Josh had it all nned out but failed to predict Drake had alcohol intolerance. He did not expect Drank to be the designated driver for the drunken girls. He looked at the time. Zachary took a private ne here. He must be arriving soon. ¡°Let¡¯s go home, Seren. ¡± Jasmine helped Serenity up. Serenity kept murmuring, ¡°I can still drink¡­ I¡¯m not drunk¡­ The alcohol¡­ must be fake¡­¡± Josh was lost for words. There was no way his brother¡¯s bar sold fake alcohol. No one would do anything to Serenity for saying that out loud. Neon Nights would not stand for anyone- except Serenity¨Cwho imed their alcohol was a fake. ¡°You¡¯re drunk. You won¡¯t be able to wake up in the morning if you have more. Liberty will give you a good telling¨Coff. ¡± Jasmine helped Serenity to the exit while instructing her brother to foot the bill. Josh blurted, ¡°My treat, Ms. Sox. ¡± ¡°We¡¯re good. ¡± Jasmine turned his gesture down, giving her brother a look to settle the bill before Josh did. Drake hurried to pay the bill. Josh did not fight over the check. Instead, he stared at the drawing on the table and picked it up before following Jasmine out of the bar. After picking up the tab, Drake took quick paces out. ¡°Serenity!¡± A husky yet heartbroken voice was heard. Before Jasmine knew it, the weight of Serenity in her hands was taken over by a pair of muscr arMs. She stared at Zachary in disbelief. Serenity mentioned that Zachary took a business trip yesterday, and the trip would be for a few days, perhaps even weeks. However, Zachary would make it back home before the new year. Why was Zachary here right now? Looking at the wasted girl in his arms, Zachary felt his heart broken to a million pieces. ¡°I can still drink¡­ Zachary¡­ ball¡­ ball¡­¡± Serenity wanted to call Zachary a slimeball, but the alcohol had gotten to her head and slurred her speech. Feeling bad, Zachary picked her up and turned on his heel to head to a sedan. The driver behind the wheel was Jim. It was a bodyguard¡¯s ride. Zachary took an overnight flight back and informed Jim over the phone to wait for him at Neon Nights. Jim got out of the car and opened the door to the back of the car. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Josh stopped him and tookrge strides forward. Stuffing Serenity¡¯s drawing in his hand, Josh said, ¡°Your wife drew this for you. ¡± He should take his time to marvel at his wife¡¯s artwork. Chapter 633 Chapter 633 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 633 Zachary clutched the paper without a word, but judging by the bantering look on Josh¡¯s face, he could guess the drawing had something to do with him. He had seen Serenity¡¯s artwork before. Serenity would often draw samples for her crafts and she was a good artist. ¡°Zac¡­hary. . Nestling against Zachary¡¯s chest, Serenity mumbled. Zachary carefully carried her into the car and sat her down at the backseat. He then sat next to her and propped her body against his before she slipped down from her seat. ¡°I¡¯m here. ¡± He breathed a husky voice into her ear, ¡°I¡¯m here, Seren. ¡± Serenity had no idea. She was so wasted that she could not open her eyes. Held tightly in Zachary¡¯s embrace, Serenity drifted between sleep and mumbles. Sometimes, she could voice her strong opinion about Zachary, but other times, it was hard to catch what she was saying as she murmured under her breath. Jasmine and her brother stood outside the bar and watched as the sedan drove off.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Who was that man, Jas? He seemed terrifying!¡± Drake asked his sister. ¡°Serenity¡¯s man. ¡± Drake blurted, ¡°The one Serenity got married to in a rush?¡± Jasmine nced at her brother, believing that her brothercked sense. What other man could Serenity have? Ignorant to his IQ being questioned, Drake noticed Josh eyeing his sister. He drew close to his sister and whispered, ¡°Jas, I think Mr. Bucham is way better than Serenity¡¯s man. He¡¯s easy on the eye. I think Serenity¡¯s man is horrifying. His expression and his gaze gave me the creeps. ¡°But why do I find the man looking familiar?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you watch Serenity draw him?¡± Scratching his nose, Drake chuckled. ¡°Oh, right. Serenity drew him. No wonder he looked familiar. ¡° Jasmine did not want to get into it with her brother. She said to Josh, ¡°We¡¯re off, Mr. Bucham. ¡± ¡°Alright. Drive carefully, Drake,¡± Josh did not have qualms about addressing Drake by his first name. He even told Drake to drive carefully. ¡°I race in my spare time. I¡¯m a great driver. ¡± Furrowing his brows, Josh had the cheek to say, ¡°Drake, you can drive my car, and I¡¯ll take yours. I¡¯ll drive your sister back, and we¡¯ll switch when you get home. ¡± Drake was speechless. Was Mr. Bucham afraid he would scare his sister for driving too quickly? ¡°It¡¯s fine, Mr. Bucham. Although my brother likes to race, he¡¯s steady behind the wheel. He won¡¯t race when I¡¯m watching him. ¡± Jasmine turned down Josh¡¯s offer again to drive her home. Drake jumped in. ¡°I can promise I¡¯ll get my sister home safe and sound, Mr. Bucham. You can give me your number if you¡¯re worried. I¡¯ll send you a text message when we reach home, so you don¡¯t have to worry. ¡± Josh must think less of his driving and believed he could not take his sister back safely. Drake did not want Josh to look down on him. ¡°Drake!¡± Jasmine cried. She could not believe her brother would ask for Josh¡¯s contact number. Chapter 634 Chapter 634 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 634 Josh left quite a good impression on Drake. Jasmine suspected Drake would sell her off if the boys kept in touch behind her back. Josh pulled out his phone with a smile stered on his face. ¡°That¡¯s very thoughtful of you, Drake. Let¡¯s exchange numbers. I think we hit it off, Drake. Let¡¯s have dinner sometime. ¡± Drake happily whipped out his phone and exchanged contacts before saying, ¡°Well, we should get going. Mr. Bucham. ¡± ¡°See you. I¡¯ll treat you to dinner next time. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡± ¡°Sure thing. ¡± Drake was overjoyed but stopped short following the re from his sister. He rubbed his nose and got into the car straight away. Standing there, Josh watched as the siblings took off. Once afar, Jasmine told her brother off, ¡°Do you know who Josh is? Why did you act all friendly and exchange numbers?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care who he is. All that matters is that he was on a blind date Jasmine was speechless. ¡°Do you want me to kick you out of the house?¡± you and he¡¯s interested in you. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have much, Jas. I only bring home eight thousand dors a month. I can¡¯t take care of you forever, so my best bet is that you find a lifelong meal ticket. That will take the burden off my shoulders. ¡± Jasmine would have given Drake a kick if he was not driving. ¡°Did I want you to take care of me, punk? I¡¯m on a higher ie than you. ¡± ¡°I told Mom that I¡¯ll be responsible for your care if you can¡¯t find a man. I asked Mom and Aunt Rachel to stop nagging you about it. That¡¯s why I¡¯m under a lot of pressure. ¡± Jasmine was moved and amused. ¡°We have rental ie on properties. Is that not enough for my care?¡± ¡°The properties belong to Mom and Dad, not me. But I¡¯ll ask our parents to offer you a share when they start splitting the inheritance. Even if you have to be a spinster, you should be the wealthiest spinster. ¡± Jasmine was lost for words. ¡°Jas, who is Mr. Bucham? He appears to be acquainted with Serenity¡¯s man. ¡± ¡°He¡¯s ¡®the¡¯ Mr. Bucham of York Corporation. You can look him up online. Anyway, don¡¯t get too chummy with him. We only went on one blind date, and nothing progressed after that. ¡°Serenity¡¯s husband and Mr. Bucham work in the samepany. They¡¯re colleagues. ¡± While behind the wheel, Drakemented, ¡°Now that¡¯s a true eligible bachelor. I should tell Momter. She shouldn¡¯t fret over your marriage. ¡°I should prepare myself to take care of you if an eligible bachelor like Mr. Bucham isn¡¯t good enough for you. ¡± Jasmine burst intoughter. ¡°Alright now. I get a good feeling about Josh. I¡¯ll take it easy with the friendship between us. ¡± Drake believed Josh was a real catch. Jasmine would probably end up a spinster if even Josh was not to her liking. ¡°You should refuse Josh¡¯s invitation to dinner. He gets busy at work. Don¡¯t take up his time. ¡± ¡°He has to eat no matter how busy he gets. He still has to eat even if he doesn¡¯t invite me to join him. You can¡¯t say that I¡¯m taking up his time. Besides, how am I supposed to know him and be the judge of his character if I don¡¯t spend some time with him? The worst of men is only revealed among their own kind. ¡± Although Josh made a good impression, Drake would not be sloppy when it came to his sister¡¯s happiness. ¡°He¡¯s as sly as a fox. You¡¯ll probably end up doing his dirty work without knowing it. His family is involved. in gathering intel. He¡¯s good at getting information. ¡± Stunned, Drake asked, ¡°He¡¯s from that mysterious Bucham family?¡± ¡°Yeah. ¡± ¡°What a coincidence. I dream about rubbing shoulders with the Buchams. I want them to show me the ropes. ¡± Jasmine was at a loss. It was a mistake to bring her brother, along tonight. She had a feeling that her brother would sell her out to join the Buchams¡¯ intelligencework. Chapter 635 Chapter 635 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 635 Back at Brynfield, Zachary gently carried Serenity out of the car. ¡°Mr. Zachary, Mrs. Lane is staying with the missus¡¯s sister,¡± said Jim. Zachary huskily replied, ¡°I don¡¯t need Mrs. Lane. I can take care of her. ¡± He carried Serenity into the building. Jim waited until Mr. Zachary was inside the building before driving away. Zachary took notice of his loafers at the front of their house. His gaze deepened as his mind harked back to when they got married. She did the same thing to send a message that there was a man in the house. It was a safety precaution. Although Serenity was a good fighter, it was better to be safe than sorry. ¡°Stand here, Seren. I need to grab the keys and open the door. ¡± Zachary put Serenity down, but she was too drunk to stand still. She would copse to the ground the moment he let go. Zachary immediately grabbed ahold of her. Putting his arms around her waist, Zachary guided Serenity to lean on his shoulder. He tried to feel the keys with his free hand but felt nothing. He reached out to his other pocket, but nothing. Did he forget his house keys from leaving in a rush? Zachary reached into Serenity¡¯s pocket, but there were no keys either. Serenity would not leave the house without the keys. There were only two possibilities-she either left her purse with the house keys at the bar or in Jasmine¡¯s car. Zachary called Josh right away. After Josh picked up the call, he said, ¡°Can you help me to contact Ms. Sox, Josh? Ask her if Serenity¡¯s house keys were left in her car. ¡± ¡°No problem. I¡¯ll ask her right now. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. No, I¡¯ll drive to the Soxes¡¯ house and retrieve the keys for you. ¡± Josh was more than happy to run the errand for his boss. Although it was past eleven o¡¯clock at night, it was still early for night owls like them. Josh hurried to the Soxes¡¯ residence. He had never been to the Soxes¡¯ home, but he knew where it was. As Zachary¡¯s head of intelligence, he knew everything he needed to know about Jasmine. By the time Josh made it to the Soxes¡¯ residence, Jasmine had a good shower and was ready for bed. The sudden call from Josh came as a surprise to her. Nevertheless, she took the call and said, ¡°My brother must have sent you the text message, Mr. Bucham. We¡¯re home safe and sound. ¡± Her brother messaged Josh once they were home. Jasmine watched him tap on the send button. ¡°I know you got home safely, Ms. Sox. Zachary and his wife went back and realized they didn¡¯t have their house keys with them. They asked for my help to retrieve the keys from you. Are Ms. Hunt¡¯s house keys in your car?¡± Jasmine stared at her best friend¡¯s purse. ¡°I think the keys were left in my car. I was thinking of delivering them to her tomorrow. Doesn¡¯t Mr. York carry the house keys?¡± Chapter 635 ¡°He rushed home when he found out his wife went drinking at a bar. He was in so much of a hurry that he forgot his house keys. ¡± The anxiousness and feelings Zachary had for Serenity tonight did not go unnoticed. Josh was hooked on the whole drama tonight. Jasmine asked out of curiosity, ¡°How did Mr. York know Serenity went out drinking when he was away on business?¡± ¡°I guess he asked Mrs. Lane. Mrs. Lane must have known you girls went drinking. He came rushing back. ¡± Jasmine remembered Mrs. Lane was at the shop when Serenity talked about going out to get a few drinks. It erased any doubt she had. ¡°Hang on for a second. I¡¯ll get dressed and hand Serenity¡¯s house keys to you. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Jasmine swiftly changed her clothes and grabbed her best friend¡¯s purse as she went downstairs. She took Serenity¡¯s crafting supplies from her boot and handed them all together to Josh, requesting that he deliver them to Brynfrield. Josh stared at the individual building behind Jasmine. It was a five-story building with a yard. It was too dark to get a good view of the furnishings. Nevertheless, Josh noticed the fancy chandelier hanging from the ceiling of the lobby. The Soxes¡¯ residence must be decorated rathervishly. Chapter 636 Chapter 636 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 636 That girl had always said she did not want to marry up but in reality, her family was rich too. It was just that the Sox family was low-key and pragmatic. They lived ordinary lives like ordinary people despite their wealth. ¡°My parents are asleep, so I won¡¯t invite you in, Mr. Bucham.¡± Josh smiled. ¡°It¡¯ste, and I didn¡¯t bring a gift either, so I won¡¯t go inside and disturb your parents. I¡¯ll visit them another day when Ie bearing a generous gift.¡± Jasmine said in her heart, ¡®You¡¯ve only just given me a bouquet of flowers and started pursuing me, but you already want to meet my parents.¡¯ ¡°Mr. York came back in a hurry. Will he need to continue his business trip tomorrow?¡± Jasmine asked suddenly. Josh thought about it and said, ¡°I think he still has to rush over tomorrow. After all, he¡¯s responsible for the matters there. If something goes wrong, he has to go over to deal with it.¡± ¡°That¡¯s quite tiring for him.¡± ¡°It¡¯s tiring, but he¡¯s willing to be a little tired for his wife,¡± Jasmine curled her lips in distaste. ¡°He deserved it. He fought with Serenity over something trivial and made her feel bad. She held it in for the whole day before letting loose in front of me tonight.¡± Today, she learned that it was deadly to fight with men. ¡°MK Bucham, is your heart also much, much smaller than normal people?¡± ¡°No, my heart is the same as a normal person¡¯s.¡± Josh quickly denied that he was a narrow-minded person. Jasmine did not ask further and turned to say, ¡°It¡¯ste, Mr. Bucham. I need to rest. Please deliver Serenity¡¯s items along with her keys.¡± ¡°Okay, good night.¡± Josh felt that he progressed quite far tonight and did not pester her any longer, lest she resented him. After bidding good night, he got in the car with Serenity¡¯s belongings and sent them to Zachary. It was already past midnight when he arrived at Brynfield. Following Zachary¡¯s direction, he went up to the eighth floor to find Zachary. There, he saw Zachary holding Serenity and leaning against the wall. Serenity looked incredibly ufortable. ¡°What¡¯s that?¡± Zachary asked his friend with a frown. After Josh put down the big box of items, he took out the house key from Serenity¡¯s purse, opened the door, and helped carry the box into the house. ¡°They¡¯re materials and tools for your wife¡¯s handicrafts. Ms. Sox entrusted me to send them over.¡± Zachary kept mum. ¡°Zachary, your wife looks very ufortable. She might want to puke. You should help her to the bathroom-¡± Before he could finish his sentence, Serenity retched. Although she did not hurl all over Zachary, the ground was soiled, and so was Zachary¡¯s sleeve. Josh froze. ¡°I didn¡¯t mean to jinx you.¡± It was perfect timing. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Serenity vomited before he could finish speaking. Zachary tensed his handsome face and ignored Josh. He continued to hold Serenity, letting her vomit everything she could to feel morefortable before supporting her to the sofa and lying her down. ¡°You take care of your wife, Zachary. I¡¯ll leave now.¡± Josh could not help and felt grossed out, so he slipped away. Chapter 637 Chapter 637 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 637 After slipping out, Josh said to himself, ¡°He¡¯s a clean freak, but he didn¡¯t push her away when she barfed on him. How much love does he have for her to tolerate that?¡± There was nothing more to say. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Josh was still a big fan of his boss¡¯s wife. He admired her to the core. In the house, Zachary first took off his jacket and threw it on the ground before doing the same for Serenity. He would clean them upter. First, he had to carry this drunk little woman back to their room. Serenity threw up once and might be feeling soberer or slightly morefortable as her mouth started to mutter. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± She suddenly called out Zachary¡¯s name loudly. ¡°I¡¯m here,¡± Zachary answered softly. He carried her into his room and instantly noticed that it was different. Everything that belonged to her was gone. Did she¡­ move back to her room in a fit of rage? Zachary stood at the door of his room in silence for a few minutes before finally deciding to carry Serenity back to her room. ¡°Zachary¡­ You¡¯re a slimeball¡­ I don¡¯t wanna like you anymore¡­ I wanna hate you¡­¡± Serenity was ced on the bed but she continued to yell about wanting to hate him and not liking him. ¡°You¡¯re so petty¡­¡± ¡± Zachary looked at her for a moment. He leaned down and said softly in her ear, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. I was wrong.¡± Serenity did not respond to him. He sighed secretly and got up to walk away. He brought her clean clothes and ced them on the bed. Standing in front of the bed, he took a moment to look at her from above before sitting down and helping her with a change of clothes. After a torturous session, he finally got her into clean clothes. He then went back to his room and hurriedly took a cold shower. He kept taking cold showers despite the cold weather. It was a testament to his good health that he had not caught a cold yet. Half an hourter, he came back to sit at the edge of Serenity¡¯s bed. She was fast asleep without any toss and turn. However, tears were clinging to the corners of her eyes, and her face was stained with streaks of drying tears. Zachary reached out and gently wiped away the tears from her eyes. The little bit of wetness was like fire burning his heart. He leaned down and with much tenderness, he kissed her face and eyes while saying remorsefully, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. I overreacted this time and angered you. ¡°You¡¯re right to scold me. I¡¯m a petty jerk. ¡°I¡¯m still hiding a lot of things from you, but I want you to tell me everything. I¡¯m always self-centered and don¡¯t think about you. I was wrong. It¡¯s my fault. I made you angry and caused you to cry. ¡°Seren, the only thing I¡¯m keeping from you is my identity. Instead of an employee, I¡¯m actually the CEO of York Corporation, the heir of the richest family in the city, the York family.¡± Zachary quietly confessed his identity in Serenity¡¯s ear and apologized to her. Unfortunately, Serenity waspletely drunk. She was sound asleep and did not hear a single word he said. ¡°You saved Nana, but I suspected you of staging the ident just so you could rescue her. However, I didn¡¯t have evidence and I couldn¡¯t question Nana because I was afraid she would scold me if she knew what I was thinking. You might not know, but Nana was very powerful when she was young. Plus, I couldn¡¯t question her because I grew up by her side. ¡°She¡¯s very fond of you and kept nagging me to marry you. She used all sorts of ways to persuade me At that time, I suspected you were a scheming woman, so I didn¡¯t want you to know my true identity when we got married. I wanted to examine your character, so I hid my identity from you. I hid it until now, but¡­ now, I¡¯m afraid.¡± Chapter 638 Chapter 638 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 638 ¡°After marriage, I was always guarded against you and suspected you. I even made you sign a six- month agreement which was full of restrictions for you¡­ I admit that I¡¯m a jerk. I¡¯ve only ever cared about my own interests and never thought about you. ¡°You called me a slimeball, and you¡¯re right. Seren, I¡¯m sorry!¡± Zachary kissed her gently on the lips, his handsome face filled with heartache. ¡°Seren, I promise you that I won¡¯t be like this again. I¡¯ll learn to understand you. I¡¯ll learn tomunicate with you and to trust you. ¡°It¡¯s your first time being a wife, and it¡¯s my first time being a husband. We¡¯re both inexperienced, so let¡¯s work hard and learn on this journey, and move forward together, alright?¡± Zachary muttered a lot in Serenity¡¯s ear. As he spoke, he gradually fell asleep beside her. This time, both the husband and wife had it bad after the fight. Serenity went to a bar to get wasted while Zachary pulled all-nighters without eating and resting well. When he heard Serenity go to the bar to get drunk, he dropped everything and rushed back immediately. He was hungry and exhausted. Mrs. Lane told him that couples should trust and understand each other in order tost. Zachary woke up earlier than Serenity. It was already seven in the morning. He remembered that he had not cleaned the living room yet. He kissed Serenity on the cheek and went out to clean. The space was swept and mopped several times. He then picked up his suit jacket and threw it into the trash. As for Serenity¡¯s clothes, he washed them by hand. He was afraid of soiling the washing machine if he dumped filthy clothing into it¡­ After finishing the tasks on hand, the hunger pang finally hit him. With no dinnerst night and so many chores this morning, he was naturally starving. Zachary¡¯s hands started to shake from hunger. He hurried into the kitchen to whip himself a quick meal and ate it to relieve his hunger. His hands finally stopped shaking. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Ring ring ring¡­ A phone rang. He answered the phone. A few minutester, he said in a low voice, ¡°I¡¯ll be there in three hours.¡± After hanging up the phone, he contacted the crew of his private ne to inform them to get ready. He had to leave Wiltspoon again soon to resume his business trip. He would not be able to spend New Year¡¯s peacefully unless he took care of things. Speaking of which, he also had to squeeze in a trip to Annenburg for two days to attend a wedding. He hoped he could make it back in time on the 28th to bring Serenity to Whitmore Mansion to celebrate New Year. Zachary went back to Serenity¡¯s room. Seeing that she was still asleep, he did not wake her. He bent down to kiss her on the cheek and whispered, ¡°Seren, I still have to work for a little longer, so I can¡¯t be by your side. ¡°Don¡¯t forget to think of me. Even if it¡¯s just to call me a jerk or a slimeball, I can ept it as long as you remember me. ¡°I¡¯ll have Mrs. Lanee backter and make you food so you can eat when you wake up.¡± After saying that, he stood up straight and took a good look at her affectionately before turning around to leave. He sent a message to Mrs. Lane. A few minutester, when he was ready to go out, he inadvertently saw the drawing on the corner of the sofa. Josh stuffed that drawing to himst night. He remembered Josh saying that it was drawn by Serenity, and told him to appreciate it. He walked over and picked up the piece of paper. Chapter 639 Chapter 639 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 639 Zachary looked at the drawing. His gaze deepened. Serenity had drawn him particrly well, but she deliberately drew his heart outside, and a super duper small one at that¡­ Was she saying that he had a tiny heart? She meant to say he was petty and narrow¨Cminded! There was also water behind his portrait. Was it ake or a pond? Furthermore, what did the circles on the surface of the water mean? There were no fish under the water. If there were, he could say that the bubbles were from the fish. Zachary held the drawing and pondered while walking. What did Serenity mean by her artwork? The portrait was ¡°Zachary¡°, but what did the water and balls mean? Jim was waiting for him downstairs. ¡°Mr. Zachary.¡± ¡°Mm.¡± Zachary hummed. When he saw Jim looking at the paper in his hand, he got into the car and said, ¡° Serenity drew this for me.¡± Jim did not see clearly what was on the paper, but since the missus drew it, then it must be a good drawing. He thusplimented, ¡°The missus¡¯s drawing must be beautiful.¡± ¡°Yes, she drew me like a photograph.¡± Zachary leaned back on the car seat and stared at the series of circles on the water. Zachary was a what¨Cball? ¡°Water? No¡­ Zachary is a slimeball!¡± Jim perked up and turned to look at Zachary. ¡°What did you say, sir?¡± He seemed to hear the words ¡°Zachary is a slimeball.¡± ¡®Is Mr. Zachary calling himself a slimeball? ¡®Or are my ears ying tricks on me?¡± ¡°It¡¯s nothing, just drive. I¡¯m in a hurry.¡± Zachary sighed deeply upon deciphering the hidden meaning behind Serenity¡¯s drawing. He folded the paper carefully and kept it. Although Serenity was calling him names, it was her first drawing for him. It was especially meaningful and he had to cherish it wholeheartedly. Ring ring ring¡­ Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. His phone rang again. It was Josh calling. ¡°Zachary, are you home or leaving for your business trip again?¡± ¡°I¡¯m going on the trip.¡± ¡°That sucks. You have to work over the weekend.¡± Josh looked sympathetic. ¡°Stop gloating.¡± Zachary spoke in a bad mood. He did not have to return to thepany during the weekend, but the, problems had not been fully managed. In addition to that, he had to visit a few of the injured employees. The matters this time needed to be handled by him or Josh personally mainly because his employees¡® lives were involved. Fortunately, the injured workers were rescued. The purpose of this business trip was to clean up the mess. The management of that subsidiary would have to be changed. ¡°Zachary, have you seen your wife¡¯s drawing?¡± ¡°I saw.¡± ¡°How do you feel?¡± Zachary said faintly, ¡°It¡¯s incredibly lifelike. It¡¯s clear that she engraved me into her heart. She must love me very much to draw me so skillfully.¡± Josh paused. ¡°Well, you can think of it that way. What about those circles she drew? Do you understand what those mean?¡± ¡°Yes, my Serenity can¡¯t bear to call me a slimeball to my face, so she used the drawing to express herself. She¡¯s taking care of my reputation so I don¡¯t feel humiliated. It¡¯s clear that she likes me very much. She can¡¯t even bear to scold me in person.¡± Josh said, ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re the only person who can spin apletely different meaning to a drawing that was meant to scold you. ¡°Aren¡¯t you angry? Did you tear that drawing?¡± Chapter 640 Chapter 640 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 640 Zachary snapped, ¡°Were you looking forward to me being angry? Why would I be angry? Even if Serenity. called me a slimeball, it¡¯s a form of tough love. She scolded me because she loves me. If she doesn¡¯t have feelings for me, she wouldn¡¯t waste her time even looking at me, let alone waste her breath on me. ¡°How can I tear the first drawing my wife has drawn for me? I¡¯m going to frame it as a treasure. When I get older, I¡¯ll take it out and reminisce about it fondly.¡± Josh was stunned. ¡°Okay, you said it. If you don¡¯t frame that drawing, then you¡¯re a chicken!¡± Zachary said in a low voice, ¡°Not only am I going to frame it, but I¡¯m also going to hang it in our bedroom and look at it twice a day, morning and night, every day.¡± It would remind him to stop being narrow-minded and not to quarrel with her over trivial matters. It would remind him not to make her angry or bring sad tears to her. Josh curled his lips. ¡°I dare you to hang it on your office wall.¡± ¡°Why should I hang it there? My wife drew it for me, so it belongs to us. I won¡¯t let other people see it. You¡¯d better wipe that drawing from your memory. ¡°I¡¯m done chatting with you. I¡¯m going to catch up on my sleep.¡± He had not rested well for the past few days. ¡°Go ahead and sleep.¡± Josh hung up the phone. He thought Zachary would not understand the meaning of the drawing and deliberately called him, feeling. that there would be an opportunity tough at him. Unexpectedly, not only did Zachary figure it out but also started to show off his wife and affection. As expected of a couple. Their line of thought was different from ordinary people¡¯s. Serenity had no idea that Zachary rushed backst night because she went drinking and he had to fly off again now. She was awakened by her ringing cell phone. There was a splitting headache when she woke up, but she endured it and took the phone to answer the call. ¡°It¡¯s me, Ms. Hunt. Are you up? Open the door and let me in.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lane? Give me a moment. I¡¯ll go and open the door now.¡± Serenity looked around and confirmed that she had woken up at home. She guessed Jasmine must have been the one who sent her back. She got up, enduring the headache, and went to open the door for Mrs. Lane. Besides Mrs. Lane, Liberty and Sonny were also present. ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity greeted her sister when she saw thetter standing at the door with her son. Liberty entered the house with Sonny in her arms and walked straight to the sofa to sit down. Serenity whispered to Mrs. Lane, ¡°Does my sister know I went out drinking?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t ask Mrs. Lane. I can still smell alcohol reeking from you.¡± Serenity stuck her tongue out. She was changed into a fresh set of clothes but since she had not taken a shower, she could still smell the lingering stench of alcohol if she took a deep breath. ¡°I just went for a couple of drinks with Jasmine. I didn¡¯t drink that much.¡± Serenity walked over, sat down next to Liberty, and picked Sonny up. ¡°Sonny.¡± N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡°Ant Swer, you stink.¡± The little one was disgusted and wriggled around to crawl back into his mother¡¯s embrace. Serenityughed in embarrassment. ¡°I just woke up and haven¡¯t brushed my teeth. I¡¯ll go wash up now. I promise you that I¡¯ll smell good in a jiffy.¡± Liberty said, ¡°Hurry up and take a shower. Change your clothes too. Elisa said she¡¯sing over to pick us both upter.¡± ¡°Oh, I forgot. We¡¯re going to Aunt Audrey¡¯s house today.¡± Serenity got up and quickly slipped back into her room. Mrs. Lane knew that Serenity had not eaten yet, so she entered the kitchen discreetly to prepare food for the missus. Serenity emerged from her room ten minutester. When her sister was not paying attention, she slipped into the kitchen and asked softly, ¡°Mrs. Lane, did my husbande backst night?¡± She had a dreamst night. It was rted to Zachary. She dreamed that he came back and held her, feeling distressed when he saw how drunk she was. Chapter 641 Chapter 641 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 641 She also dreamed that he said a lot of things to her, but she did not hear them. In the dream, she told him to speak louder because she could not hear him, but his mouth simply continued to open and close. She was unable to hear a single word and had been incredibly anxious. Mrs. Lane turned to look at Serenity, then turned back to her work. ¡°I sent your sister and Sonny home yesterday evening and stayed overnight at their ce. I really have no clue if Mr. York came back or not.¡± Serenity smacked her own head. ¡°Right, you didn¡¯te home. Ugh, my head hurts. Mrs. Lane, can you please make me a bowl of hangover soup? No, I¡¯m going to take a painkiller. My head is killing me.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Serenity turned and slipped out of the kitchen. Actingpletely naturally, she wandered into the guest room and found the medicine box to grab a bottle of painkillers. ¡°Headache?¡± Her sister¡¯s voice resounded. Serenity was startled that she almost dropped the bottle. ¡°I have a headache from not sleeping well. I¡¯ll be fine after taking a painkiller.¡± Since she was seen by Liberty, she stopped trying to take the medicine secretly. ¡°How many times have I told you not to drink? You¡¯re not a good drinker and get drunk after just a few sses, but you never listen to what I say. Do you think you can go drinking without consequences because Zachary isn¡¯t at home to keep an eye on you?¡± Liberty was distressed and angry. She pulled her sister¡¯s ear and nagged, ¡°When Zacharyes back, I¡¯m telling him to take you along on his business trips in the future, lest you take advantage of his absence to go drinking again.¡± ¡°Sis, his business trips are for work. What am I going to do if I follow him? ¡°I just had a couple of drinks. I didn¡¯t drink that much.¡± ¡°What a load of bull. Do you think I don¡¯t know you? You can¡¯t drink, yet you love to drink. If there¡¯s no one watching you, you¡¯ll definitely drink five, six, or even eight sses.¡± Liberty turned around and walked toward the kitchen while scolding her sister, ¡°Ask Mrs. Lane to make you a bowl of hangover soup to drink.¡± ¡°I know you love me the most, Liberty. You¡¯re the best sister in the whole wide world.¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah.¡± Liberty red at Serenity. While Serenity was eating. Liberty went to the balcony and saw there were clothes hung outside. She brought Zachary¡¯s clothes in while saying to her sister, ¡°Zachary has been away for a few days, but you didn¡¯t help him put away his clothes. Why are they still damp? ¡°You have good lighting here, and the balcony is facing east. The clothes will dry easily when the sun rises, but why are they still damp after being hung for a few days?¡± It had not rained the past two days either. Although it was cold, there were asional sunny hours during the day. The house Liberty rented did not have as much sunlight as Serenity¡¯s, but the mother and son¡¯s clothes. were able to dry after hanging them out in the sun all day. Serenity said instinctively, ¡°Zachary rarely dries his clothes on the main balcony. He has a small one in hist room, so he always dries his clothes over there.¡± Liberty hung the clothes again and said, ¡°If he doesn¡¯t dry his clothes here, then whose clothes are these? Yours? This long pair of trousers should be Zachary¡¯s. It¡¯s clear they¡¯re men¡¯s pants.¡± Serenity was at a loss. She carried the bowl and walked out to see. She froze. It really was Zachary¡¯s pants. His shirt as well as his briefs were there too. ¡°That¡¯s weird. I remember he rarely hangs his clothes outside. Besides, I helped him pack his luggage. before he went on his business trip. I made sure he didn¡¯t have any clothes left out in the sun.¡± Chapter 642 Chapter 642 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 642 Liberty gave her sister a look. ¡°Are you saying his clothes ran outside by themselves? They¡¯re still damp.. They must¡¯ve been washedst night or this morning.¡± Serenity muttered, ¡°Did he reallye backst night?¡± ¡°What was that?¡± ¡°Nothing. Look, don¡¯t you think the flowers I have are pretty? You enjoy the little balcony garden while I finish eating.¡± When Serenity returned to the dining room with the bowl and sat down, she hurriedly took out her cell phone and sent a message to Jasmine. [Jasmine, when did I get drunkst night? Did your brother and you take me home after I got drunk? [Why did I have a dreamst night about Zacharying home? It¡¯s not like I miss him. [He has clothes drying on my balcony, and his clothes are still damp¡­ Could it be that I wasn¡¯t dreaming? Was he actually back? [Text me instead of calling since my sister is here. I don¡¯t want her to worry that I¡¯m fighting with Zachary.] After Liberty divorced, what she feared most was that her sister would be affected and unhappy in her marriage as well. Thus, Liberty was concerned about the rtionship between her sister and brother-inw. Jasmine replied quickly. [You drank a lot before you got drunk. It was my first time seeing you break your record. Your husband dide back. I helped you out of the bar after you got drunkst night. [Then, I met Mr. York in front of the bar. He grabbed you before I could react. [He was also the one who took you home. You weren¡¯t dreaming. You really did feel his presence. He came back. I thought you wouldn¡¯t remember what happened with how drunk. you were.] Serenity was speechless. She thought for a moment and asked her friend. [Zachary really came home? I don¡¯t remember what happened. I thought I was dreaming. He said a lot of things to me too. He nagged like an old man.] Jasmine was toozy to type and sent a voice message instead. ¡°Did you just wake up? Is Mr. York around? Oh, right, I asked Joshst night and he said that Mr. York had to rush back to the city today to continue his business trip. Josh mentioned that those matters had to bet taken care of by Mr. York so he had to handle them before he could return. ¡°Seren, he was so worried when he found out you went to the bar to get drunk that he dropped everything. and came rushing back. It¡¯s clear that he still cares about you.¡± Serenity turned down the volume a little before listening to the voice message from her best friend. It turned out that Zachary came back indeed. However, he left before she woke up. He was so busy, yet he hurried back because she went to the bar to get wasted.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Serenity did not know whether to be touched or continue being willful. How did Zachary know that she went drinking at the bar? Although they met Josh at the bar and it was possible that he told Zachary, Zachary was far away. He could not have arrived right as she left the bar. He must have made his way back earlier because he received the news in advance. ¡°Didn¡¯t you follow when Zachary brought me home?¡± Serenity asked. Jasmine responded, ¡°Mr. York went to pick you up himself and called a car. That substitute driver from your neighborhood, Jim, drove.¡± Serenity recalled when she was showering. The clothes she was wearing this morning were not the same set she wore yesterday, which meant her clothes were changed after she got home. Mrs. Lane was not around while Grandma May went back to her house, and Jasmine did not follow her back. In other words, it was Zachary who helped her change. She waspletely out coldst night¡­ Did Zachary do anything when he stripped her? Chapter 643 Chapter 643 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 643 Ring ring ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s cell phone rang. It was a call from Elisa. She stopped talking to Jasmine and quickly answered the call. ¡°Serenity, where do you live?¡± ¡°Brynfield. ¡± ¡°Okay, I¡¯m going over now. I¡¯m in front of your store, but you¡¯re not open today. ¡± Serenity said, ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll send you the location. My sister and I are ready to leave. ¡± Elisa hummed. After Serenity sent the location, Elisa opened the navigation app on her phone and headed for Brynfield. She had always been a fast driver. When she was about to merge into traffic on the expressway at an intersection, she almost crashed into a Maybach. Both the Maybach and her car were urgently halted. Elisa wound down her window and the other driver did the same. She instructed the driver of the other car to back up a little to make way for her to pull up before they discussed the incident. The driver did not immediately do as Elisa gestured. Instead, he turned his head to look at the person sitting in the back seat. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Remy asked in a low voice. ¡°The car in front wants us to back up. ¡± Remy slightly tugged the car curtain aside to take a look. He then closed the curtain and said to the driver, ¡°That¡¯s the youngdy of the Stone family. She¡¯s a rude and unreasonable woman. Back up a little and let her go. ¡± Remy managed the FC & Co. subsidiary in Wiltspoon and often dealt with the bigwigs of Wiltspoon¡¯s businessmunity. However, he did not have any business dealings with Stone Group. FC & Co. shared no dealings with Stone Group because of their existing partnerships with York. Corporation. Moreover, Stone Group and York Corporation are business rivals. Nevertheless, Remy still recognized the important figures from Stone Group. . The current head of the Stone family was Clive Stone, who spoiled his wife like a maniac. It was fine not to know who Clive was, but one had to know who his wife, Alice, was, so as not to identally offend the woman and incur Clive¡¯s wrath. Audrey¡¯s appearance should also be kept in mind. Although she had never been the head of Stone Group, she climbed all the way up from a small clerk in thepany to her current position. Even her husband¡¯s capabilities were inferior to hers. During the reign of thest CEO of Stone Group, many affairs were solved thanks to Audrey. All the more reason Audrey could not be offended. Finally, there was Elisa Stone. This darling daughter who was doted on by everyone around her had a bad temper. If someone annoyed her, she would rip into that person regardless of their status. Remy was cold and shrewd when it came to business, but warm and gentle in everyday life. He had a good temperament. Since he knew that Elisa had an explosive temper, he did not want to bicker with her over something trivial. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. What was the harm inpromising a little? Elisa was a girl, so Remy thought, ¡°Ladies first. ¡± ¡°Yes, sir. ¡± The driver started to reverse the car and the security entourage behind them followed suit. When Elisa saw the other party giving way to her, she thanked Remy¡¯s driver before quickly driving away. She blended into the traffic flow but met a red light and had to stop about two hundred meters away. Remy¡¯s car pulled up on the otherne right beside Elisa¡¯s car at the traffic light. Elisa nced over twice but could only see the driver since there were curtains on the backseat window. The curtains were closed, so she could not see who the passenger was. At the intersection earlier, it was apparent that the driver was the one who refused to give way when she was merging into hisne as he wanted to go straight. It was the passenger behind who was willing to make way for her. Chapter 644 Chapter 644 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 644 When the light turned green, Remy¡¯s car went ahead of Elisa¡¯s. Elisa saw Remy¡¯s car te number and wondered, ¡®Whose car is that? Those ck cars behind belong to a security detail, right? ¡°Who else in Wiltspoon besides Zachary likes to go around the city with an entourage?¡± Elisa had no clue. Her eldest brother did not like to bring bodyguards and would only asionally bring two, unlike Zachary whose bodyguards were divided into two teams of eight each. Every time he showed up, it was always. with the fanfare of an emperor¡¯s arrival. Serenity had no idea that Elisa met Remy on the road. After she sent Elisa her address, she sent a text message to Jasmine to inform that she was going to her aunt¡¯s house. She then pondered for a while before sending a message to Zachary. He was most likely still on the ne and did not reply to her message. Serenity¡¯s heart sank at once. She muttered, ¡°Fine, don¡¯t reply. It¡¯s not like I care or anything.¡± She ced the phone into her coat pocket, got up, and carried the dishes into the kitchen to clean up. ¡°Liberty, have you applied the cream for the wound on your face?¡± ¡°I have, but I don¡¯t know if it¡¯ll leave a scar.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°The wound isn¡¯t deep, so there won¡¯t be a scar.¡± Liberty carried Sonny over and watched her sister wash the dishes from the kitchen door. ¡°Seren, do your think I¡¯m too soft?¡± ¡°You forgave them once for Sonny¡¯s sake. Besides, now that they know we have an aunt, they won¡¯t dare. do anything to you in the future. It¡¯s just¡­ I think your ex-mother-inw regrets it now.¡± ¡°She regretted it long ago, but it¡¯s not because she lost her daughter-inw. She regretted that her son. had to give me money. Well, now that I¡¯m divorced, I don¡¯t care what happens to them.¡± As they spoke, Liberty received a phone call from a number that seemed somewhat familiar. She could not remember who the number belonged to but she had answered a call from this number before. ¡°It¡¯s me, Liberty.¡± Jessica¡¯s childish voice resounded as soon as Liberty answered the phone. ¡°Is there anything you need, Ms. Yates?¡± Liberty blocked every one of the Brown family¡¯s numbers, but she did not block Jessica¡¯s. ¡°No, but can I add you on social media?¡± Jessica always spoke in a childish tone, making Liberty frown. ¡°Ms. Yates, can you speak in a normal voice?¡± Liberty was not Hank, so she did not like to hear Jessica¡¯s coquettish voice.. Jessica fell silent, then proceeded to speak normally. I want to add you as a friend. Can you ept?¡± ¡°Ms. Yates, are you still dreaming, or do you have a few loose screws in your head? You want to add me. as a friend? What do we have to talk about?¡± Jessica said, ¡°I¡¯m not afraid of you calling me arrogant I just want to know if you can live a good life after divorcing Hank. Oh, right, you got more than a million dors from him. It¡¯llst a long time if you and your son are frugal.¡± Liberty was not angered by Jessica¡¯s arrogance and said calmly. ¡°We still live in the same city, so you¡¯ll be able to find out about me as long as you try. You can wait and see how my son and I live a prosperous life. ¡°I would also like to remind you not to be too arrogant, Ms. Yates, or you¡¯ll end up miserable.¡± Jessica giggled ¡°What should I do? I was born this arrogant. Did you know? I¡¯ve known about you since! joined Waltham Electronics. They all sang praises about how capable and beautiful you used to be, and that you and Hank were a perfect match. ¡°I got jealous of you, so I wanted to take everything that belonged to you.¡± Chapter 645 Chapter 645 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 645 ¡°By the way, just for your information, Hank and I will be registering our marriage on theing Valentine¡¯s Day. ¡± Liberty was still remarkably calm. ¡°Congrattions, Ms Yates¡± Congrattions on jumping into the pit of mud that was the Brown family. ¡°It¡¯s the weekend today and I just woke up to a handmade breakfast by Hank. I heard you were married for more than three years, but you were always the one cooking for Hank. You had probably never tasted his cooking before. ¡± Liberty had had enough of Jessica¡¯s provocation so she cut the call off. ¡°Liberty, was that the Yates woman?¡± ¡°Yeah. She¡¯s insane. I divorced Hank and let them be together, but she still called to brazenly ask me if she could add me as a friend on social media. She must¡¯ve wanted to unt her daily dose of lovey- doveyness with Hank to piss me off. ¡°What¡¯s there to be upset about anyway? We¡¯re already divorced, so what is Hank to me now? He¡¯s just an ex¨Chusband. ¡± As for Hank prepping breakfast for Jessica, that just tickled Liberty¡¯s funny bones. It was a fact that Hank did not cook, so there was no way he could make her breakfast. He must have gone outside and ordered takeout. ¡°She also mentioned they were going to register their marriage on Valentine¡¯s Day. I can¡¯t wait for them to get their license soon and be tied together. That way, she¡¯ll finally be able to experience what the Brown family is like. ¡± Serenity scolded, ¡°She¡¯s utterly shameless. ¡± ¡°How would she have seduced Hank if she wasn¡¯t? However, I¡¯m still grateful to her. If not for her. persuasion, Hank wouldn¡¯t have given up Sonny¡¯s custody so easily. ¡± Liberty hugged Sonny again. Her son was her life. She could let go of Hank, but she could not let go of her son. Fortunately, it was all over now. ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s go to the supermarket to buy some stuff first. ¡± After all, they could not go empty handed to their aunt¡¯s house. Liberty hummed in agreement. The sisters took Sonny to the supermarket and came out with plenty of bags,rge and small ones, stuffing the trunk of the car and the backseat to the brim. Just as they were about to get into the car, they received a message from Elisa saying she was already at the entrance of Brynfield. Serenity took her sister back to the entrance of the neighborhood and met up with Elisa. They did not reenter the neighborhood but instead followed Elisa straight to the Stone residence. On the way, Liberty said to her sister, ¡°Seren, if Aunt Audrey wants to help us, we have to refuse firmly. We¡¯re still young and have all limbs intact, so we can support ourselves. We can¡¯t rely on Aunt Audrey just because she¡¯s super rich. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Liberty. I¡¯ve thought about that a long time ago. No matter how Aunt Audrey wants topensate us, I¡¯ll be sure to refuse ¡± Audrey had searched for her sister for decades and finally found her two nieces, so helping them would definitely be on her mind. The sisters thought of that too It took forty minutes to get to the Stone family vi. Audrey was waiting at the entrance with her family A smile immediately spread across her face when she saw the two cars from afar. When the cars approached and stopped, Audrey took the lead and walked toward Serenity¡¯s car. Elisa opened the car door and jumped off, smiling at the Hunt sisters. ¡°My mom has all she wants now that she has her nieces. She doesn¡¯t want her daughter anymore. ¡± ¡°This is your home. Do you need me toe out and wee you when youe back to your own home?¡± Audrey reached out to hug Sonny, but Sonny still did not want her to carry him, so she could only pat his head ¡°Aunt Audrey,¡± Serenity called out to Audrey, who answered with a smile. Darrell walked over with his two sons as well as his daughter¨Cinw. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Uncle Darrell. ¡± Serenity and Liberty greeted Darrell. Darrell nodded with a smile and said, ¡°Your aunt has been waiting here since morning. She wanted to go over and pick you two up herself. ¡± Serenity was a little embarrassed. They werete because she got drunkst night. Chapter 646 Chapter 646 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 646 Liberty was the one who drove them here. She told her son to greet them. Sonny did not want Audrey to hold him, but he was willing to greet them. He addressed them the way his mother taught him. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°This child is so cute.¡± Alice smiled. ¡°Can I hold him?¡± Audrey said, ¡°Sonny doesn¡¯t even want me to hold him. Will he let you hold him instead?¡± Alice reached out tentatively. Unexpectedly, when Sonny saw her, he suddenly reached out as well for Alice to hold him. Audrey was speechless. ¡°Sonny is picky with people.¡± ¡°He¡¯s usually not picky. He was just scared because of thest time. He¡¯ll want you to hold him the next time we meet, Aunt Audrey.¡± Even Liberty was surprised that Sonny was willing to go to Alice. ¡°Liberty and Serenity, this is Clive, my eldest son. He¡¯s your cousin.¡± Audrey introduced her sons to her nieces. The sisters greeted Clive. Clive smiled back and said nothing.. Audrey then pointed to her second son and said, ¡°This is my younger son, Anthony. He¡¯s two years older than Liberty and three years older than Serenity.¡± Liberty and Serenity greeted him as well. ¡°Ant Swer.¡± Sonny wanted to return to his aunt¡¯s embrace after letting Alice hold him for a while and Serenity quickly reached out to hug her nephew. Clive¡¯s eagle eyes noticed the diamond ring on Serenity¡¯s left ring finger. As he looked at it, he found that it was rather familiar. 1 It seemed that not long ago, he saw the same type of diamond ring on a certain someone¡¯s hand. Clive was secretly ogling at the diamond ring on Serenity¡¯s finger for a long time. ¡°Let¡¯s go in. It¡¯s cold outside, and the wind is strong today.¡± Darrell called everyone into the vi. At the same time, he said to his daughter, ¡°Move the car in, Elisa.¡± Elisaplied and moved her car to park at the open parking lot. Liberty followed her and drove. Serenity¡¯s car into the vi as well. Chatters and touches ofughter were heard as they made their way into the gorgeous vi. The maids brought in the gifts that the Hunt sisters bought. When Audrey saw that her nieces came bearing abundant gifts, she said, ¡°I¡¯m not a stranger anymore. There¡¯s no need to buy so many things when you visit. I don¡¯tck anything.¡± ¡°They weren¡¯t much, Aunt Audrey.¡± Serenity walked alongside Audrey with Sonny in her arms. Elisa parked the car and waited for Liberty. before catching up to the rest in front of them. When they entered the luxurious main building, everyone took their seats on the sofa. ¡°Alice.¡± Clive tugged his wife¡¯s sleeve and when Alice looked at him, he whispered, ¡°I have something to say to you. Let¡¯s go upstairs.¡± Alice whispered back, ¡°Can it wait tillter? Your cousins had just arrived.¡± ¡°Mom, Dad, and Elisa are with them.¡± Clive managed to recall whose hand wore the same familiar diamond ring. He wanted his wife to find a chance to ask Serenity about itter. Alice looked at her husband¡¯s serious expression. When she saw that her inws¡® attention was not on them, she quietly followed him upstairs. Back in the couple¡¯s room, Clive closed the door and even locked it so that no one could enter. Alice asked curiously, ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Clive? You look so serious.¡± Chapter 647 Chapter 647 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 647 ¡°Alice, I saw the wedding ring that Serenity was wearing. ¡± Alice looked at him and said in amusement, ¡°Do you think we don¡¯t have eyes and you¡¯re the only one who saw it? So what if you saw it? What¡¯s wrong with Serenity¡¯s wedding ring?¡± Clive was silent, pondering how to phrase himself. ¡°We¡¯re husband and wife. What is it that you can¡¯t tell me? Didn¡¯t you call me upstairs because you wanted to say something to me? What¡¯s wrong?¡± ¡°Alice, do you remember me telling you about Zachary showing off his wedding ring on his social media?¡± Alice nodded. ¡°Of course, I remember. That day, you even told me to go talk to Elisa early in the morning. You were the good cop while I was the bad cop. I wanted to cry myself when I saw how much pain Elisa was in. ¡°You also said that Zachary actually invited you to a meal when you met him by chance at Wiltspoon Hotel. You kept talking about it all night, saying that you would¡¯ve never dreamed of having Zachary invite you to a meal in your lifetime. ¡°You even suspected that Zachary had feelings for you. You¡¯re married, and so is he. You don¡¯t have to worry about him liking men. Even if he does, he won¡¯t like you. You¡¯re just overthinking. ¡± Clive was the CEO of Stone Group. He was immensely powerful in his own right. Although Aliceined that her husband had many baseless suspicions, she very much adored him from the bottom of her heart. Clive flicked his wife¡¯s forehead. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡°You got me wrong. After I met Zachary at Wiltspoon Hotel that day, I found that he had changed his wedding ring. He exined that his wife didn¡¯t like gold rings, so he changed them into diamond rings. ¡°We ate at the same table, so I saw him unting his wedding ring for hours. I¡¯ve imprinted on my mind how his ring looks, so when I saw the wedding ring that Serenity was wearing, I felt it was familiar. It matched Zachary¡¯s ring. ¡± Alice looked at her husband in shock. After a moment, she reached out to touch Clive¡¯s forehead and then her own. She muttered, ¡° You don¡¯t have a fever. Are you okay? How could Zachary¡¯s wedding ring match Serenity¡¯s? ¡°If their rings are a pair, doesn¡¯t that mean that Zachary¡¯s mysterious wife is Serenity? Do you think that¡¯s possible?¡± Alice was in disbelief. Who was Zachary York? He was the heir of the York family. It stood to reason that Serenity and he would never cross paths in their lives. Clive said, ¡°It¡¯s not impossible. 1 heard Elisa mention that Serenity¡¯s husband had the samest name York. Although there are many people with the samest name in this world, the York surname is quite umon. In Wiltspoon, everyone who carries thest name York is either from Zachary¡¯s family or rted to them. ¡°Serenity¡¯s husband is also working at York Corporation. Don¡¯t you think it¡¯s too much of a coincidence?¡± ¡°Are there no other people with the surname York working at York Corporation who aren¡¯t Zachary or his brothers?¡± Clive choked for a moment, then said, ¡°That¡¯s not true either. Many members of the extended family also work at York Corporation. Some are closer by blood, but most of them are at least thrice removed. ¡± ¡°Maybe her husband¡¯s ancestor was from the same family as Zachary¡¯s ancestor. They just share the samest name, but are not rted. Chapter 648 Chapter 648 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 648 Clive had this in mind, so he did not think about Zachary when his sister mentioned that Serenity¡¯s husband had thest name York. Although the York family had a deep heritage that spanned several generations, they originated from the countryside. It was said from where their ancestors lived, everyone had thest name York. Clive did not know whether Zachary¡¯s ancestors brought along the townspeople when they made a fortune in the city. However, he was cognizant that there were indeed many employees with the surname York in the headquarters of York Corporation and its branchpanies. However, most of them had nothing to do with Zachary and simply shared the samest name. ¡°That¡¯s why I called you up. I want you to find an opportunity to secretly ask Serenity what her husband¡¯s name is. Don¡¯t let Mom or Elisa find out. You know Elisa hasn¡¯tpletely let go of her feelings for Zachary. ¡°Mom just found Serenity and Liberty, so don¡¯t let her know for the time being. I don¡¯t know how she¡¯ll react if Serenity¡¯s husband really turns out to be Zachary. She¡¯s bent on helping her two nieces now, but she loves Elisa more. ¡°Even our affection is biased toward Elisa. After all, Elisa is my sister, but Serenity is just my cousin who we just reconnected with. We don¡¯t even have a sibling bond yet. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡± Clive said in a low voice, ¡°Elisa told me that Serenity always addresses her husband as Mr. York around her. She had never mentioned her husband¡¯s name before. Coincidentally, Elisa also addressed Zachary as Mr. York in front of other girls. She doesn¡¯t use his first name either. ¡°I think that¡¯s probably how it is. They both don¡¯t know that the man they¡¯re talking about is actually the same person. ¡± Alice paused before saying, ¡°Clive, I feel like you¡¯ve already decided that Serenity¡¯s husband is Zachary. ¡°Serenity¡¯s best friend is Mrs. Lowe¡¯s niece, and the Lowe family¡¯s heir often goes to Serenity¡¯s shop. How could it be that Serenity doesn¡¯t even mention her husband¡¯s name in front of Mr. Lowe and the others?¡± Clive added, ¡°You don¡¯t understand the York family¡¯s way of education, so it¡¯s normal for you to think so. ¡°The York family¡¯s children are well protected before they step into society, so outsiders don¡¯t know what they look like or what their names are. They attend schools like ordinary people, so no one knows that they¡¯re actually from the York family. ¡°The first time Zachary attended a business reception was when his grandmother brought him to one ten years ago. It was his official debut. If Old Mrs. York participates in a business reception, the other guests must be rich and influential. She only introduced Zachary to those bigwigs. ¡°After that, Zachary slowly took over York Corporation, and everyone called him Mr. York. Among those in the younger generation, only those who were close to the York family know his name. ¡°He also protects his privacy exceptionally well. If Elisa weren¡¯t from the Stone family, she wouldn¡¯t even be able to find out Zachary¡¯s name, let alone pursue him. ¡°Mr. Lowe might not know that Serenity¡¯s Zachary is Zachary York, or he just thought that it was someone with the same name. After all, no one would expect Serenity¡¯s husband to be the great Zachary York. With his temperament, do you think he¡¯s someone who would get married all of a sudden?¡± Alice shook her head. ¡°I don¡¯t believe that he is Serenity¡¯s husband, but you said that you saw Serenity¡¯s ring matching Zachary¡¯s. ¡± Even though it was her husband raising those doubts, she still could not believe it. Clive said, ¡°I hope I¡¯m just overthinking. If Serenity¡¯s husband indeed turns out to be Zachary¡­ Alice, if Serenity¡¯s husband is really Zachary, we have to keep it a secret. It¡¯s not to help Zachary, but it¡¯s for Elisa. ¡± Chapter 649 Chapter 649 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 649 ¡°Elisa finally put down her infatuation for Zachary. We¡¯ll tell her when she haspletely let go and is able to openly face Zachary with the fact that he¡¯s married. ¡± Clive sighed. ¡°If she finds out that Serenity¡¯s husband is the man she loves but can¡¯t get, I can¡¯t imagine the consequences. Serenity isn¡¯t close to us, but Elisa and her get along well. ¡°I have to think about Elisa. ¡± ¡°But Serenity is your cousin now, and her husband is your brother- inw. If it¡¯s really Zachary, he has to apany Serenity to visit us eventually. He can¡¯t keep hiding and refusing to see Mom, right?¡± It was fine if Serenity¡¯s husband did not meet them but Audrey was their elder. He had to meet her. ¡°I¡¯ll ask Zachary tonight if his marriage with Serenity is hidden. Serenity probably doesn¡¯t know his identity. She most likely wouldn¡¯t dare marry him if she did. ¡± Alice reminded him, ¡°Serenity said her husband is out on a business trip and won¡¯t be back for some time. ¡°Why don¡¯t you call Zachary now and ask him where he is? If he¡¯s in Wiltspoon, then you¡¯re overthinking it. If he¡¯s on a business trip, then he may really be Serenity¡¯s husband. ¡°Speaking of which, how did Serenity get married all of a sudden in the first ce? Elisa didn¡¯t ask either. ¡± Clive thought about it and said, ¡°I have a hunch that Serenity¡¯s husband is Zachary York. That day when I met him coincidentally, he had the sudden magnanimity to invite me to a meal. I think it might not just be because he was in a good mood. He¡­ might have been trying to please me because he already knew that Serenity is my cousin. ¡± Alice hesitated but concurred, ¡°That¡¯s possible. ¡± She added, ¡°I¡¯ll go downstairs now and find a chance to ask Serenity secretly. ¡± ¡°Be careful and don¡¯t let Mom or Elisa know. Even if we get confirmation, we still have to hide it, lest Elisa finds out and falls out with Serenity. ¡± Alice nodded solemnly. She would bring this secret to the grave. She was reluctant to believe that Serenity¡¯s husband was Zachary York, the heir of the York family. How could Zachary York get married all of a sudden? He had incredibly high standards and usually did not allow young women to approach him unless they were rtives. He had always kept women at bay, at least three meters away from him. Making such a man get married suddenly was harder than trying to ascend to heaven. Even if he wanted to marry, why would he marry Serenity? ¡°Let¡¯s go downstairs. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡± Clive embraced his wife and went out. The couple went downstairs as if nothing was wrong. Audrey was talking to the Hunt sisters about hosting a banquet tomorrow night. ¡°Everyone in Wiltspoon knows that I had been looking for my sister. Although my sister passed away, it¡¯s afort to me that I found you two. I¡¯m going to hold a banquet to introduce you to everyone and announce to the public that you¡¯re my nieces. In the future, anyone who tries to bully you means they¡¯re going against the Stone family. ¡± Audrey still remembered how Liberty was bullied by her former inws. Liberty handled it herself, so Audrey did not intervene. However, she still mentioned it to Clive when she got home, asking him to retaliate against the Brown family in other ways without harming them physically or breaking thew. He just needed to make Hank lose his job. Hank¡¯s sister was another atrocious specimen. Audrey was only relieved when Clive said that he would seek justice for his cousin. ¡°Seren and Liberty, since you¡¯re already here, spend a few days here with me. After lunch, Elisa and I will take you two out to pick your evening dresses for the banquet tomorrow night. ¡± Upon seeing the couple who had just reached downstairs, Audrey said, ¡°Clive and Alice, both of you are responsible for sending out the guest invitations. Invite all the people we know to the party. ¡± Chapter 650 Chapter 650 Married at First Sight by Gu Lingfei Chapter 650 Alice blurted, ¡°We¡¯re also acquainted with the York family. Should we invite them too?¡± After asking, she snapped back to her senses and hurriedly pped her hand over her mouth, quickly ncing at her sister-inw. ¡° Sorry, I was talking nonsense. ¡± She even stole a nce at Serenity to see if thetter had any reaction to the mention of the York family. Alice thought in her heart, ¡®Are Serenity¡¯s inws really the York family?¡¯ Audrey was not upset at her daughter-inw and said, ¡°They won¡¯t send someone even if we invite them. Let¡¯s not make a fool of ourselves. ¡± The elders of the York family did not fancy her daughter. Elisa had liked Zachary for many years and openly pursued him, but the elders of the York family never expressed any thoughts, indicating that the York family did not want to ease rtions with the Stone family and be inws. Audrey felt that finding her nieces was a grand and happy event. She did not want the attitude of the York family to spoil her good mood. Elisa¡¯s heart ached, but she did not show it on her face. She smiled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about me, Alice. It was Mom who was vague with her words. She said to invite everyone we know, which includes the York family. ¡± ¡°I won¡¯t invite them, Elisa. ¡± Audrey patted the back of her daughter¡¯s hand. Although she admired the young men of the Yorks, the two families had been at odds for a long time. Even if her daughter did not love Zachary, the two families would not send invitations to each other. She supposed the stiff rtionship between the two families would not be eased in her lifetime. There was no trace of reconciliation between Clive and Zachary, so maybe it would have to wait till the next generation. ¡°Lunch is ready, Ma¡¯am,¡± a maid walked up behind Audrey and spoke respectfully. Audrey immediately said to Serenity and Liberty, ¡°Let¡¯s eat first. After lunch, we can rx for a while, then I¡¯ll take you out shopping. We¡¯ll shop till we drop! ¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey, we don¡¯t need to buy anything. ¡± Liberty tried to decline politely. Audrey deliberately pulled an unhappy face. ¡°Liberty, do you not want to go on a shopping spree with me?¡± Serenityughed. ¡°That¡¯s not what my sister meant, Aunt Audrey. We don¡¯t need to buy anything for the banquet. We have clothes to wear. ¡± ¡°What you have is yours, but I want to buy more for you. There¡¯s Sonny as well. I want to dress him up as a handsome little gentleman. ¡± Elisaughed. ¡°Our Sonny is already a handsome little gentleman. ¡°I¡¯ve liked Sonny since the first time I saw him. Back then, I envied Seren for having such a cute nephew. I never thought that he would be my nephew too. ¡± Elisa smiled smugly. She also had a nephew now. Everyone was amused by her. Serenity held Sonny¡¯s hand and followed Audrey into the dining hall. Beep beep¡ª Her phone received a new message. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She took out her phone and opened WhatsApp. Elisa, who was right beside her, inadvertently nced over and saw that the person who sent the message was ¡°Mr. York, Sudden Husband¡±. Elisa teased, ¡°Seren, does your husband send you messages every day on his business trip?¡± Chapter 651 Chapter 651 Chapter 651 Serenity said with a smile, ¡°My husband would text me when he has the time. Well, we¡¯re in touch every time. Our marriage is at a much better ce now. ¡± She even kept her argument with Zachary from her sister, much less her aunt¡¯s family. Serenity did not want to worry her aunt. ¡°Rtionships take time to build. You¡¯ve been married for three months now. It¡¯s only normal for your marriage to get better. ¡± Elisa leaned in and whispered nosily, ¡°How are things going on with Josh and Jasmine? I¡¯m dying to find out. ¡± Josh was Zachary¡¯s right¨Chand man. He also came from a family that specialized in intelligence. Elisa could not believe Jasmine had gone on a blind date with Josh. She believed she could earn a lump sum for selling this information to the press but of course, Elisa was not short of money. She was friends with Jasmine too and she was not the kind of person who would do anything to betray her friends. Elisa would keep the secret about them until Josh was ready for the world to know. Thest thing Elisa would want was for the media to be all over Jasmine and disrupt her peace. After Serenity replied to Zachary through text message, she chuckled and said, ¡°Didn¡¯t my aunt say she wanted to have a party tomorrow night? Get Alice to send Jasmine an invitation and get your brother to send Mr. Bucham an invitation, so they both could attend the party. You can see how things are going between them then. ¡± With her eyes lighting up, Elisa giggled. ¡°You got it all thought out for sure. I wanted to invite Jasmine anyway since she¡¯s your best friend and my new friend. I don¡¯t feel right leaving her out of the party. ¡°But Josh might note. ¡± He was the executive assistant of York Corporation after all. Serenity smiled. ¡°Tell your brother to let Mr. Bucham know that Ms. Sox will be attending. I think that should be enough reason for him to attend the party. My aunt organized the family event to introduce me and my sister to everyone. It¡¯s not business rted. Mr. Bucham can attend as a member of the Bucham family. ¡° Elisa believed Serenity made a great suggestion. She said to her brother and sister¨Cinw, ¡°Clive, send the Buchams a few invitations and make sure Josh gets one. Alice, please help me deliver an invitation to Jasmine. Jasmine is a good friend of mine and Serenity¡¯s. ¡± Elisa was going to take her mom along with Serenity and her sister shopping this afternoon. As Alice and Clive were the heads of the household, Elisa needed to let them in on it. Clive and his wife agreed to Elisa¡¯s request. Meanwhile, Zachary found out through the text message that Serenity was at the Stones¡® residence for a meal. Zachary: [Enjoy your meal. It¡¯s a shame I¡¯m not there to help you peel the shrimps. ] Serenity: [I usually eat the shrimp together with the shell. ] Zachary: [¡­ Tinyzy bug. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ] Serenity: [How am I tiny?] Zachary grinned without a word. Serenity peevishly retorted and added: [You¡¯re tiny! You have a tiny mind and heart. Yo¡¯re such a petty guy The couple exchanged messages for a while before Serenity ended the conversation. [I got to eat now. We¡¯ll chat when we have time. Don¡¯t forget to have your meals on time. Don¡¯t ruin your health. I¡¯m not going to nurse you back to health. ] Zachary replied with an emoji to acknowledge the message. After the meal, Mrs. Stone and her daughter went upstairs to get dolled up. Alice said to the Hunt sisters, ¡°I¡¯ll take you out for a walk, Serenity, Liberty. You can get familiar with the ce. ¡± ¡°Sonny wants to take his nap, so I¡¯ll have to pass on that. Go on with Seren. ¡± Liberty was carrying her son for an afternoon, not feeling in the mood for a stroll. It suited Alice fine that Liberty was noting along. Several minutester, Alice affectionately held Serenity¡¯s arm as they strolled and chatted. Since Alice and Serenity were great talkers, the conversation kept going. ¡°Seren, I heard from Elisa that you got married to your husband at first sight. Why the rush to get married?¡± Chapter 652 Chapter 652 Chapter 652 Looking rather curious, Alice asked Serenity. Serenity turned around before replying, ¡°It¡¯s a good thing my sister didn¡¯t tag along, but all¡¯s good now since my sister divorced Hank. I knew I was the reason for the fights between Hank and my sister. That was why I married in such a hurry.¡± She exined to Alice the hasty marriage. Alice nodded her head. ¡°I see. You saved your husband¡¯s nana, and his nana really likes you. She paired you two together probably to repay your kindness too.¡± She had rarely seen the Old Mrs. York, but her man had mentioned that the olddy was friendly and did not put on airs. Old Mrs. York had a thing for going around keeping her identity hidden like a woman¨Cchild. There was one thing Alice could not wrap her head around. It was questionable for a bad*ss person like Old Mrs. York needed rescuing. Was Serenity sure that the olddy did not have her eye on Serenity from the very beginning and tried to scam her to be Zachary¡¯s wife? ¡°Is your husband working at York Corporation?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± ¡°Is your husband¡¯sst name also York?¡± Tilting her head, Serenity nced at Alice and answered with a smile, ¡°Alice, do you think my husband is the wealthy heir of the York family? ¡°My husband is only an ordinary sryman, but he¡¯s a brilliant man to hold a managerial position in the company. Honestly, there are too many managerial positions at York Corporation. My husband said that he rarely got to see the great Mr. York in person. ¡°Work has been good mainly because¡­ Well, he sort of got a free pass at work.¡± It was all thanks to his connections to Josh. Zachary and Josh would be speechless to find out about this. The actual person with the free pass was in question. ¡°York is not amon surname, and your husband happens to work at York Corporation too. It really gets people thinking.¡± Alice followed with another question, ¡°What¡¯s your husband¡¯s name?¡± ¡°Zachary.¡± ¡°Zachary York?¡± ¡°Yeah. Does the heir share the same name too?¡± Serenity added with a smile. ¡°My husband¡¯sst name is York, but I doubt he has the same name as ¡®the¡¯ Mr. York.¡± Alice replied with a grin, ¡°That¡¯s true. I was just checking.¡± However, a storm was brewing inside her. Jesus Christ. Serenity¡¯s husband was indeed ¡°the¡± Zachary York! There were many people with the same surname under the sun. Of course, the same went with people of the same name and surname. Nevertheless, there was only one person named Zachary York in the whole of York Corporation, and that was the heir of the York family. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Alice could not believe that her man¡¯s suspicion was true. If they were the same person, it would exin Zachary¡¯s abrupt invitation to Clive for a meal the other day Zachary must have known early on that Serenity was Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece and Clive¡¯s cousin. He was trying to get on Clive¡¯s good side. ¡°Truth be told, you¡¯re not the only one to suspect my husband¡¯s link to the wealthiest York. It can¡¯t be a coincidence. A man of status and power like Mr. York wouldn¡¯t need to marry in such a rush. Would he need to marry someone like me? ¡°Jasmine always talks about the female lead having a blind marriage to a rich heir and that I must have married a rich husband too. How can fiction be taken seriously? How many rich heirs are there anyway to be married randomly to one?¡± Alice replied with a smile, ¡°That¡¯s right. Fiction can¡¯t be taken seriously, but storiese from life itself. Sometimes, life can be more clich¨¦ than stories.¡° Chapter 653 Chapter 653 Chapter 653 Alice took Serenity around the residence before excusing herself to take a nap. ¡°Go and have your break, Alice. I¡¯ll sit here and enjoy the view. ¡± Serenity did not want to go back into the house. Compared to thevishly furnished home, she preferred the natural scenery in the yard. She saw a few garden patches along the fence and guessed that her aunt must have done the gardening herself. Mrs. Stone was thedy of a wealthy and powerful family, but it did not change the fact that she grew up in an orphanage. It made sense that she would be hands¨Con with gardening after going through poverty and retiring from a desk job. ¡°Are you cold? I¡¯ll send someone to fetch you a jacket if you are. ¡± Serenity and Liberty did not bring extra clothes as they were here for a meal. They thought they would go home after a meal and a good chat. It turned out Mrs. Stone wanted them to stay for a few days. Serenity had to returnter in the evening to bring a change of clothes. ¡°Thank you, Alice, but I don¡¯t feel chilly. ¡± Alice smiled. ¡°Well, have fun. I¡¯m heading back for a nap. I¡¯ll feel tired if I don¡¯t stick to the routine. ¡± Serenity expressed understanding. Such was the case with her daily routine as well. Once Alice was back inside the house, Serenity whipped out her phone and clicked on her Whatsapp. Staring at Zachary¡¯s profile picture, she realized he had switched his profile picture for a photograph of their wedding rings. Serenity chuckled as the frustration she had toward him gradually diminished. She tapped on the button for a video chat. Zachary quickly picked up. ¡°Seren. ¡± His deep but hoarse voice was heard. It somehow pained Serenity to hear him like this. It must have taken a toll on Zachary after the couple had another fight, and she went drinking at a bar while he was away on business. He rushed back on the same day to check on her and hurried back to work soon after. ¡°Didn¡¯t you sleep well?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not that. I might have caught a cold. ¡± His health took a hit as he often bathed in cold water during winter. Serenity told him off, ¡°You betteryer up and have your meals on time. I was fine. I only went for a few drinks to let some steam off. ¡± Zachary stared at her for a moment before uttering, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. It was all my fault. ¡°I was overly sensitive and self-centered without any regard for your feelings. You¡¯re an independent woman. I¡¯ve known that from the start. Yet, I kept trying to get you to rely on mepletely to satisfy my pride as a man. It was my fault. ¡°I was being petty and narrow¨Cminded. You should yell at me if I make the same mistake again, but don¡¯t go drinking at a bar, okay? You can¡¯t hold your liquor well. You threw up and cried after you got drunk. I felt terrible and sorry that felt upset. that you ¡°I¡¯ve been through the pain of a splitting headache after a night of drinking. It was so bad I don¡¯t ever want you to experience it. ¡± Serenity looked at him quietly through the video call. His apologies and reflections threw her back to the night of their phone call. Her voice softened. ¡°Zachary, I thought I didn¡¯t have to tell you everything since I could handle it myself, but in a way, your huge reaction is a show of your concern for me. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°We can be a little more patient and understanding toward one another. We got married without knowing or loving each other. I can¡¯t promise that we won¡¯t have another fight after this, but I can guarantee that we can take a few days to cool our heads and calmly have a talk whenever we face a problem. ¡± The fight had left the couple with mental scars and bruises. Marriage was forever. The road was long, so the fights, silent treatment, and misunderstanding would often find their way into the journey. Chapter 654 Chapter 654 Chapter 654 Communication was key. ¡°Sure.¡± Zachary¡¯s hanging mind was at ease. ¡°You¡¯re sick. Don¡¯t take your drinks cold, and get a doctor¡¯s appointment after work. Why don¡¯t you go now instead? Don¡¯t drag on. Do you have a fever?¡± Zachary lifted his arm to feel his head. It was burning. No wonder he felt light¨Cheaded. Nevertheless, he did not tell Serenity the truth. ¡°I don¡¯t have a temperature. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m feeling fine. I¡¯ll get some medicine from the pharmacyter. How are you at your aunt¡¯s ce? ¡°Are your uncle and cousins good to you?¡± ¡°You look a little red. Are you sure you don¡¯t have a temperature, Zachary?¡± Serenity had a keen observation. ¡°My uncle and cousins are nice. I don¡¯t need to say much about Elisa. We hit it off fine. Zachary, blood rtion is an amazing thing. Elisa and I have never met before. We didn¡¯t even know we were cousins, but we got on well from the get¨Cgo.¡± Zachary grinned. ¡°Send my regards to your aunt since I can¡¯t visit her yet. I have time during the New Year¡¯s holidays. I¡¯ll go with you to visit your aunt then.¡± He intended toe clean to Serenity about his identity before visiting the Stones. Zachary would ept it wholeheartedly no matter the response Serenity would have. As his nana put it, he deserved it. ¡°My aunt understands. She said that the party tomorrow is to introduce me and my sister to everyone. Zachary, it¡¯d be great if you were here too. I don¡¯t really like this sort of thing. I feel better when you¡¯re with 1. me. ¡°You give me a lot of assurance. You¡¯ll always find a way to help me out of any trouble. You¡¯re a superman to me, Zachary.¡± Zachary chuckled. ¡°I¡¯m just lucky to be able to help you. Let me know if you evere across a problem you can¡¯t solve. ¡°Don¡¯t feel too worried about the party. Your aunt has standing in Wiltspoon. Now that she has finally found you, she wants to take you under her wing and introduce you to everybody at the party. ¡°Everyone will be nice to you out of respect for your aunt. Don¡¯t feel burdened.¡± ¡°I want you by my side¡­¡± That was why she put it out there. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren.¡± Apart from an apology, Zachary had no idea what else he could say. ¡°But I feel assured with Elisa and Jasmine there. At least there¡¯d be people I know at the party. ¡°Zachary, you don¡¯t look too good. You better go to the hospital. I¡¯ll let you off now, I¡¯ll video call when I get the time tonight. If you look worse than you already are, you must send me your address so I can drag Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Chapter 654 you to the doctor¡¯s!¡± Serenity believed Zachary was the kind to hold up even when he was sick. Many believed taking medication could ward off sickness whereas some would not even take it and would hang on. However, that would only make the illness worse. Serenity might sound stern, but Zachary took it as her concern and care for him. Although feeling light¨Cheaded, Zachary felt his illness washing away through his beloved Serenity¡¯s concern for him. He replied with a smile, ¡°I don¡¯t have time tonight. You¡¯re busy tomorrow too. I¡¯ll have a video chat with you in two days. If I don¡¯t get better in the next two days, then you¡¯re wee to drag me to the hospital.¡± Chapter 655 Chapter 655 ¡°Alright. I¡¯m on a break like the students now. I¡¯m going there to sort you out and whip you into a henpecked husband if you don¡¯t be good. You can forget your dignity in front of your colleagues.¡± The smile across Zachary¡¯s face deepened. ¡°So you¡¯re saying that you¡¯lle here and keep tabs on me if I deliberately stay away from the doctor?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you dare, Zachary!¡± Zachary cowered on purpose. ¡°I¡¯m scared. I wouldn¡¯t dare.¡± ¡°Alright now. I¡¯m going to stop here. Hurry up and get yourself to the hospital. You¡¯re an adult, yet you don¡¯t take good care of yourself.¡± Serenity grumbled before hanging up. She left Zachary to his work. ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity watched as her sister drew close. ¡°Is Sonny asleep?¡± ¡°Yeah. I want to take a walk while he¡¯s sleeping. It¡¯s good exercise. I run three times a day now. I put myself on a diet and cut sugar. I slow down on the protein to keep my weight too.¡± Liberty stopped and added. "My takeaway from the three-year marriage is that we women should take care of ourselves and be financially independent. We can''t be overly reliant on men and trust that they''ll take care of us. No one wants to end up like me right now. "Men turn bad when they have money. Hank changed after he was promoted to manager. See. Money changed him for the worse." Supporting her sister''s weight loss program, Serenity said, "Are you running three times every day? I think you can do morning and evening runs." During lunch, Serenity noticed her sister keeping off the meat. Her sister skipped dessert while they were chatting. In the past, her sister usually went for dessert. "The weight loss will show if I persevere with running three times a day." Liberty was cruel to herself to get back into shape. She wanted her numbers to go down to the ideal weight during her single days before the opening of her breakfast ce. She was young and would be thirty-one years old when New Year came around. She could not give up on herself because of one failed marriage. She had to stand up on her two feet again. It was time to begin her new life. "Can you walk with me, Seren?" Liberty invited her. With a smile, Serenity went with her sister to stroll around the yard of the Stones'' residence. They would jog a little in between. Behind a room window on the second floor of the main building, a couple was staring at the sisters who were running around the yard. Alice asked the man beside her. "Clive, what do you think Serenity''s response will be when she finds out that she''s somehow the missus of the York family?" Clive was without a word. He could not guess Serenity''s reaction, but he knew his sister would go mad and turn against Serenity once the news broke. Turning around, Clive walked away from the window and sat on the bed. After much thought, he gave Zachary a call. Seeing Clive''s iing call, Zachary hesitated but picked up the call in the end.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. "Mr. Stone." "Is it a convenient time now, Zachary? I''ll buy you coffee. We''ll meet at the caf¨¦ on the first floor of your Wiltspoon Hotel." Zachary fell silent for a moment before saying, "Well, I should go on the coffee date with you since you''re buying, but it''s a shame I''m not in Wiltspoon right now. I''ll need to take a rain check on that." "Where are you?" "I''m away on business." Chapter 656 Chapter 656 Chapter 656 Clive cussed Zachary in his mind. He was still second¨Cguessing whether it was Zachary when Serenity mentioned her husband¡¯s name. Now that Zachary said that he was away on business, Clive could confirm that Zachary was Serenity¡¯s husband. ¡°When are youing back?¡± ¡°Are you that eager to buy me coffee?¡± ¡°Quit the act, Zachary. I know it all. The wedding ring on Serenity¡¯s finger belongs to the same pair as yours, right? Your wife whose face is not shown in the picture is Serenity, right?¡± Zachary went radio silent. He neither admitted nor denied it. Clive took Zachary¡¯s silence as his admission to the fact. ¡°When did you two get married? Was it before Serenity went viral on Twitter? You¡¯ve been married for a while, yet you kept quiet about it. Elisa went mad for you and even went all the way to your office to profess her love for you in public! ¡°Elisa became the talk of the town while you went on your aloof and sophisticated self, making a joke out of Elisa. The public made fun of her for not being able to win your heart. Theyughed at her because despite knowing you and I are rivals in business, she liked you anyway. They teased her because she asked for it. ¡°Why did you hide from Serenity that you¡¯re the heir of the wealthy York family?¡± Clive grew furious as he spoke. He was reminded that his sister was all over Zachary when the man had already gotten married to Serenity. His sister unknowingly became the other woman in someone¡¯s marriage. Elisa would probably go crazy for Zachary to this day if he did not let the word out or wear his wedding ring. ¡°How long do you n on keeping it from Serenity? Don¡¯t you know Serenity and Elisa are best friends? They¡¯re also cousins now. What would Elisa think when she finds out that Serenity¡¯s husband is the man she once loved and could not have? What would Serenity think? How would the cousins get along then?¡± ¡°Clive.¡± With her husband yelling at Zachary on the phone, Alice had to approach her husband and reminded him, ¡± Keep it down. Your mom and Elisa might hear you.¡± Taking a few deep breaths, Clive then said to his wife, ¡°Pour me a ss of water, Alice. I got thirsty after running my mouth.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Alice turned on her heel and walked away to pour a ss of water for her husband. She also told her husband to pipe down and keep his emotions in check. On the other end of the line, Zachary waited until Clive blew off some steam before callously retorting,¡± That¡¯s between me and Serenity. I don¡¯t have to exin to you.¡± ¡°Zachary!¡± Clive gnashed his teeth in anger. ¡°What¡¯s with the cocky attitude? Don¡¯t make me show Serenity who you really are.¡± ¡°Clive, it¡¯s between me and Serenity. I have my reasons and thoughts to keep my identity from her. I get to decide when I¡¯lle clean to you, but I have no responsibility to tell you that. ¡°I never had feelings for your sister. I never even spoke to her prior to her confession to me. There¡¯s no such thing as me lying to her. It¡¯s her issue that she has feelings for me. I can¡¯t control her nor could I stop her.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was husky. ¡°Even if Serenity finds out who I am, my nana was the one who brought us together. She was single without a boyfriend while I was a bachelor without a girlfriend. We did not commit anything wrong morally or legally to be together. ¡°She did not do Elisa dirty!¡± The things brought up by Clive were Zachary¡¯s concerns before. He was worried Elisa might do something to Serenity. ¡°You¡­¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Clive wanted to give Zachary a bigger piece of his mind but was at a loss for words. ¡°Mr. Stone, this is a bad time for me to continue this chat. I¡¯ll treat you to dinner after New Year¡¯s. We¡¯ll talk soon.¡± ¡°After New Year¡¯s? Oh, that¡¯s right. You can¡¯t show your face now. Are you feeling guilty? Bet you didn¡¯t imagine Serenity would be my cousin.¡± At a switch of the topic, Clive added, ¡°Call me your cousin, Zachary.¡± Chapter 657 Chapter 657 Chapter 657 Zachary terminated the call right away. Despite being hung up on, Clive was not angry at all. He smirked coldly. ¡°You can refuse to acknowledge me as your cousin, Zachary, but I¡¯ll get my way one way or another. ¡± Alice was pouring him a ss of water when she heard hisment. She said, ¡°You¡¯re now family. What do you mean get your way? Whatever reason he keeps his identity a secret, Zachary is Serenity¡¯s husband. ¡± I¡¯ve been his rival for many years, and none of us ever get the upper hand. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Now that I have the chance to climb over his head, I got to make use of the opportunity. ¡± Clive grabbed the ss and took a couple of gulps. ¡°Zachary wound me up badly. I must get my payback when he returns from his business trip. I¡¯ll contact Serenity toe along when he buys me dinner. I bet he¡¯ll have to call me his cousin then. ¡°Honey, I¡¯m walking on air just thinking about my nemesis bowing to me because I¡¯m the older cousin. ¡± ¡°I think you¡¯ve gone mad. ¡± Alice replied amusedly. ¡°He¡¯s your peer. Are you going to force him to acknowledge you if he doesn¡¯t want. to?¡± T¡¯ll give him a hard time and call him rude in front of Serenity if he doesn¡¯t acknowledge me as the older cousin. ¡± Alice was speechless. She could imagine her man having a discreet showdown with Zachary Zachary was a little worried at first now that Clive saw through his cover. After hanging Zachary fell deep into contemtion and soon felt at rest. Clive was furious because he felt sorry for his sister and not Serenity. on Clive¡¯s call, Before Elisa could let go of her feelings for Zachary, Zachary did not have to worry about Clive telling Serenity the truth about him. Not only that, but Clive would also figure out ways to keep Zachary¡¯s identity under wraps. Zachary could unt his affection for Serenity before Clive too. Once he was back from the business trip, Zachary would be on his best behavior during the dinner with Clive in case thetter might try to start something and make him look bad in front of Serenity because he was Serenity¡¯s cousin. As for admitting Clive to be the older cousin¡­ It was not like Clive would bite him if Zachary refused to acknowledge him. Uff! Zachary felt like he was between a rock and a hard ce. Rubbing his temples, Zachary was at his physical limit and called someone to make a quick trip to the pharmacy for him. Back at the study on the second floor of the Buchams¡® residence, the head of the household was busy at work. Josh¡¯s torso was against the desk as he leaned in to read the text messages sent in the group chat. It was an arrangement to protect Zachary¡¯s privacy. The head of the family was informing everybody what. information about Zachary could and could not be released. All credit should go to the head of the Bucham household that Zachary¡¯s privacy was protected from everybody including the press. ¡°Julian. ¡± ¡°Speak. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re amazing. I think the public must be curious about you. ¡± The head of the household lifted his head and nced at Josh before uttering, ¡°Didn¡¯t Zachary arrange a blind date for you? You could¡¯ve used your weekend to woo your wifey instead of watching me work here. I asked you to help me, but you said you prefer to ve away at York Corporation. ¡± Josh replied, ¡°I invited my future brother¨Cinw to dinner tonight. ¡± Julian rolled his eyes. ¡°You should be taking Ms. Sox out to dinner if you want to win her heart, not her brother. Look at you. When are you going to say goodbye to singlehood?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll win her heart through my brother¨Cinw. ¡± ¡°That¡¯s a silly move. You should start with your mother¨Cinw, no, future father¨Cinw. It¡¯s easy with your mother¨Cinw. Mothers¨Cinw tend to warm up to sons¨Cinw rather quickly. ¡± Pursing his lips, Josh answered with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll build a rtionship with all of them. Jasmine will have no choice but to fall into my arms when the whole family pressures her. ¡± ¡°Knock, knock. ¡± Someone was at the door. Chapter 658 Chapter 658 Chapter 658 Josh sat upright immediately. ¡°Come in.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. The door was pushed open, and a bodyguard came in with an invitation. Josh thought that it was an invitation for Julian to a banquet. Unexpectedly, the bodyguard walked straight to him and handed him the invitation. ¡°Mr. Bucham, this is an invitation sent by Mr. Stone. The Stones will be holding a banquet tomorrow night and have invited you to join¡± ¡°Me?¡± Josh took the invitation skeptically and questioned, ¡°The Stones are holding a banquet, and Clive had someone specially send it over? Also, the banquet is tomorrow night? Why so sudden?¡± Other families might make their banquet known a few days in advance. Some even gave guests ten days of notice so they could get ready. Was this ast¨Cminute decision by the Stone family? Josh remembered how Audrey recognized her two nieces and he guessed the real purpose of the banquet. ¡®She must wish to introduce her two nieces to Wiltspoon¡¯s elites. ¡°Hehe, what does Zachary think about it?¡± ¡°Mr. Stone also had a message for you.¡± ¡°What message?¡± ¡°Ms. Sox is among the invitees.¡± Josh¡¯s eyes glimmered. He grinned and asked the bodyguard, ¡°Has the messenger from the Stone family left?¡± ¡°No, he¡¯s still outside awaiting your reply.¡± Josh did not even open the invitation to read it and simply said to the bodyguard, ¡°Tell him I¡¯ll be there on time tomorrow night.¡± ¡°Yes, sir.¡± The bodyguard respectfully took his leave. Josh ced the invitation on the desk. ¡°I guess I won¡¯t be able to mess with Clive anymore the next time I see him.¡± ¡°Ms. Sox has no rtionship with Clive. Those words should be said by Zachary instead.¡± Julian set his work in order, put down the phone, leaned back, and said with a vague smile, ¡°Now, do you understand the reason I don¡¯t want to get married?¡± ¡°That¡¯s just because you haven¡¯t found the right person. Look, Zachary was so stubborn before too, but he hadpletely surrendered now. He flips out if Serenity ignores him, and he quarrels with her for days. before she can even exin herself. ¡°Elisa and Jasmine also have a good rtionship, so it¡¯s natural that the Stone family invited Jasmine to the banquet. They extended the invitation to me out of consideration for Jasmine. Since they¡¯ve given me this opportunity, I can¡¯t just let it go to waste, right?¡± The York and Stone families did not see eye to eye. In the past, Josh helped Zachary set many pitfalls for Stone Group and schemed against Clive to steal their business. In Stone Group, just the mention of Zachary¡¯s and Josh¡¯s names was enough to make the employees gnash their teeth. If Josh did not have a sturdy backing by the name of Zachary York, he would have been stuffed into a bup sack long ago. ¡°What goes around,es around.¡± Julian spoke and stood up. ¡°I¡¯m going out.¡± ¡°Where are you going this time?¡± ¡°You won¡¯t like following me anyway.¡± Julian rarely spent time at home. However, no one knew what he was up to outside. Not forgetting the invitation, Josh got up and followed Julian. ¡°I¡¯m going to buy some stuff for Drake to bring back to his sister in the evening.¡± Josh felt that he had to start with his future brother¨Cinw. Not only did he have to build a good rtionship with Drake, but he also could not neglect Jasmine. Having Drake bring gifts to his sister frequently was equivalent to Josh improving the Sox family¡¯s opinion of him. Chapter 659 Chapter 659 Chapter 659 What would the scene of a woman meeting her ex¨Chusband and his mistress when out shopping be like? Liberty did not have much of a reaction. As for Jessica, when she walked into the store and saw the Hunt sisters, her instinctive reaction was to cling tightly to Hank¡¯s arm. It was as if she was afraid others would not know they were a couple. ¡°Daddy.¡± Sonny, who was being held by Serenity, called out to Hank when he saw thetter. The people in the store turned to look at Hank. They saw Hank standing next to the young and beautiful Jessica, then at Liberty, whom Sonny had called ¡± Mommy¡± earlier. The store clerks looked at Liberty with sympathy. She came out shopping for clothes but ended up catching her husband cheating on her¡­. ¡°Sonny,¡± Hank walked over to Serenity under the watchful eyes of the store clerks. Jessica followed closely. ¡°Sonny, let Daddy hold you.¡± Hank reached out to hug Sonny. Serenity did not give him Sonny directly and ced him on the ground instead. If Sonny was willing to let his father hold him, then Hank could crouch to pick up his son. Sonny was still young and did not know his parents had divorced. He was not that close with his father, but he would not reject him either. He let Hank hold him since his father wanted to. The store clerks were speechless. They were nning on quickly calling the police if a scuffle broke out. Liberty continued to pick clothes as if nothing happened. She bought a few sets of clothing from this brand before she got married. She was quite fond of it, so she habitually chose this store when she followed Audrey out to shop for new clothes. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Unfortunately, this brand did not have plus sizes. ¡°He¡¯s my ex¨Chusband.¡± Liberty spoke indifferently. Realization dawned on the store clerks. That exined how she could still calmly browse for clothes even when seeing her husband with another woman. It turned out that he was her ex¨Chusband. ¡°Are you shopping for clothes, Liberty? This brand isn¡¯t cheap.¡± Jessica found it an incredible eyesore when she saw Hank ying with his son. However, she could not act out. When she saw Liberty¡¯s indifferent expression, she could not help but walk to thetter¡¯s side while unting like a victor. Liberty did not stop looking at the clothes. She only gave Jessica a sidelong nce and said flippantly,¡± 1.7 That¡¯s true, but I can still afford to buy these clothes with the million dors Hank gave me.¡± Jessica choked. Serenity walked over and picked out a set of clothes in a color and style that suited her sister. ¡°Liberty, these ones suit you very well.¡± Jessica suddenly reached out and grabbed the set of clothes, saying with a vague smile, ¡°Serenity, why don¡¯t you look at your sister¡¯s body? How can she wear these clothes? Even if you have money beyond your knowledge of spending it, that¡¯s not how you should do it.¡± Serenity did not bother to take back the clothes that were snatched away by Jessica as she felt that Jessica¡¯s hands were dirty. She could not understand Jessica. ¡®Is she deliberately trying to make her presence known because she had sessfully gone from being a mistress to a proper girlfriend? Why¡¯s she showing off her love with Hank in front of my sister?¡± Jessica was trying to make her presence known and wanted to show off her rtionship with Hank so she could ce herself in the position of the winner. She was young, pretty, had a good figure, and had Hankpletely wrapped around her finger. Chapter 660 Chapter 660 Chapter 660 When Liberty was Hank¡¯s wife, Hank led an easy life with everything provided. Now, it was Jessica who was living that life. Hank felt that Jessica was his true love. After defeating Liberty by easily getting promoted to the top and gaining Hank¡¯s deep affection, Jessical could not wait to show off in front of Liberty, trying to provoke her. Liberty did not pay attention to Jessica and picked out a few more sets of clothes for herself. Seeing this, Jessica tried to grab the clothes again. Serenity caught her wrist and said coldly, ¡°Hey, don¡¯t think my sister is easy to bully. She doesn¡¯t care to fight with you, but I won¡¯t allow you to bully her!¡± She flung the hand away. With a push, Jessica was forced several steps back and retreated to Hank¡¯s side. ¡°Hank Brown, keep an eye on your lover. Don¡¯t let her piss me off or I¡¯ll beat her to a pulp.¡± Jessica was so angry that she was at a loss for words. ¡°Serenity Hunt, does your man know how brutish. you are? Be careful so he doesn¡¯t throw you away.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°My man is different from others. He likes my brutishness!¡± Jessica was infuriated by Serenity¡¯sughter. When she saw Hank by the side with Sonny in his arms instead of standing up for her, she pped his arm in anger and scolded him. ¡°Look, Hank! Your ex¨C sister- inw is bullying me!¡± Hank was afraid that Jessica would hurt Sonny in her rage, so he put the boy down. Serenity waved at her nephew. ¡°Come here, Sonny.¡± Sonny immediately walked up to Serenity, who picked him up and said to Hank, ¡°Watch your woman, Hank. I¡¯m not as tolerant as my sister.¡± ¡°Seren, don¡¯t bicker with a mad dog.¡± Liberty handed the clothes to the clerk, took her son back from her sister¡¯s arms, and said, ¡°She probably thinks that a mistress has to fight it out with the legal wife. I was quick to grant her wish, but she felt that it was going too smoothly, so she was just showing off to feel superior. ¡°What¡¯s there to show off? Hank Brown is just a man I don¡¯t want anymore. If I were topare him to a shoe, he¡¯s just a pair of worn¨Cout shoes. I threw them away, but she picked them up and treated them like treasure.¡± ¡°Liberty!¡± Hank called out with a dark expression. ¡°Take a look in the mirror. Aren¡¯t you embarrassed shopping in this store? Can you even wear these. clothes? You¡¯ll just end up ruining them.¡± Liberty nced at him and said to the sales clerk, ¡°Ring me up, please. I¡¯ll take all these clothes.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Jessica said sarcastically, ¡°Why don¡¯t you buy all the clothes in this store? Didn¡¯t you get acknowledged by a rich aunt? Didn¡¯t your aunt give you hundreds of millions to shop for clothes? ¡°Do you live in a vi? Drive a luxury car? Do you have bodyguards following you around everywhere?¡± Chapter 0 That was what Jessica was most jealous about As soon as Liberty and Hank divorced, Liberty found her wealthy aunt. That aunt was from the Stone family, a powerful family, which was second only to the Yorks. Their assets were worth billions The entire Brown family regretted it when they learned that Liberty got an affluent aunt, especially Hank¡¯s mother When Jessica and Hank first got together, Olivia liked her and praised her for being more sensible, good- looking, and capable than Liberty. Oliviamented that it was Hank¡¯s good fortune to be able to meet her Now, Olivia had privately told Hank to pursue Liberty again, saying that Liberty was more suitable to be a wife than Jessica was. Was she mocking that Jessica could only be a mistress? ¡°Buy all the clothes in this store if you can, or I¡¯ll look down on you!¡± Before Liberty could speak, Audrey and Elisa pushed the door. Audrey took good care of her face, but at that moment, her expression was gloomy as she loudly told the clerk, ¡°Except for the set of clothes she¡¯s holding, pack up all the clothes in your store for my niece.¡± Chapter 661 Chapter 661 Chapter 661 ¡°Aunt Audrey¡­¡± Audrey raised her hand and motioned for Liberty not to speak. She gazed coldly at Jessica. Jessica cowered. ¡°M¨CMrs. Stone.¡± Audrey turned to her daughter and said, ¡°Elisa, call and inform our family bodyguards to drive over all the luxury cars in our garage so your cousin can ride in all of them one by one. Each of our cars costs at least a million.¡± ¡°Mrs. Stone, it¡¯s a misunderstanding.¡± Hank hurriedly tried to smooth things over. ¡°We won¡¯t shop here anymore, Mrs. Stone. We¡¯ll leave right away.¡± Hank was reminded of the difficulties he was facing at work now and did not dare to confront Audrey head¨Con. He took away the clothes in Jessica¡¯s hand and passed them to the clerk. He quickly pulled Jessica and left despondently. Jessica did not dare to do anything in front of Audrey, but as soon as she left the shop, she shook off Hank¡¯s hand and stormed forward angrily. ¡°What were you doing just now? You didn¡¯t say a word when you saw me being bullied by those sisters. ¡°You only cared about holding your son. If he¡¯s so precious, why don¡¯t you go to court again to take back custody of him? ¡°It was only but a rich aunt Liberty has now. It¡¯s the Stone family that¡¯s rich, not Liberty herself. Does she think she can do whatever she wants? ¡°As for Serenity, she¡¯s so annoying. You should¡¯ve torn into her for me earlier. She doesn¡¯t know how to mind her own business. Who is her man?¡± Jessica thought viciously, ¡®I want to know what Serenity¡¯s man looks like. I¡¯m going to arrange for someone to seduce him. I¡¯ll let her taste what it¡¯s like to be betrayed by her husband and abandoned too. ¡®The sisters are close, right? ¡®Then they can be divorcees together!¡® Hank caught up and reached out to take her shoulders to coax her. ¡°Don¡¯t be mad. I¡¯ll take you to the jewelry storeter for you to pick out a wedding ring. We¡¯ll buy whatever you like. ¡°You don¡¯t know this, but Serenity learned kickboxing. Although I¡¯m a man, I can¡¯t beat her because I didn¡¯t learn any martial arts. ¡°I haven¡¯t seen Sonny for several days, so I miss him. He¡¯s my son after all. I held him because we finally met. Don¡¯t be angry anymore.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. In the past, he could see his son every day, so he did not think he would miss his son that much. After the divorce, Sonny went with Liberty. He suddenly missed his son. ¡°Serenity¡¯s man is stern and indifferent. He¡¯s not someone easy to mess with either. What are you nning?¡± Hank asked defensively, ¡°Are you going to seduce him?¡± Jessica coquettishly feigned anger at him. ¡°What are you talking about? I have you. I don¡¯t care about other men. However, I really want to destroy Serenity¡¯s marriage. They have a rich aunt now as their backer, so I can¡¯t fight them openly, but I can get them from behind the scenes. ¡°Since they upset me, I won¡¯t let them have a good time either!¡± Hank said, ¡°A man like Zachary won¡¯t be easy to seduce.¡± ¡°Let me tell you something, Hank. You men all think with your lower body. Serenity is pretty, but her figure is average. I¡¯ll find a woman with the face of an angel and the body of a devil as her love rival. I guarantee he¡¯ll be satisfied with the results!¡± Hank was a little embarrassed. He was one of those men who sumbed to temptation. He embraced Jessica while walking and said, ¡°Don¡¯t be angry, Jessica. Even if Liberty has an aunt now, her aunt has children of her own. She won¡¯t be able to share her aunt¡¯s family property either. She¡¯s still poor. ¡°I¡¯ll tell you some good news. Liberty left Lewis & Co. She can¡¯t continue working there anymore. I hired someone to make things hard for her there, and she finally couldn¡¯t stand it and handed in her resignation letter. She still hasn¡¯t found a job yet.¡± Chapter 662 Chapter 662 Chapter 662 ¡°Even if I give her more than a million dors, she¡¯ll probably end up spending all of it buying a house, but she still won¡¯t be able to find a job. Unless her aunt keeps supporting her, she won¡¯t be as happy as we are.¡± Sure enough, Jessica¡¯s mood improved. ¡°A million isn¡¯t even enough for the down payment for a house in downtown Wiltspoon. A friend of mine bought a second hand apartment in the busiest part of the city a while ago. It¡¯s near a school district and is only seven hundred square feet, but it cost her five million. I was really shocked.¡± If she had not snatched Hank away, she could not have afforded to buy a house in downtown Wiltspoon with her ie. Hank was cognizant that housing prices were exorbitant now. Fortunately, he struck early. If he only bought a house now, he would not be able to buy one in a good location, let alone a school district. ¡°I asked around and heard that Mrs. Stone is a very strong woman. She dislikes weak and ipetent people the most. If Liberty can¡¯t stand up by herself, Mrs. Stone won¡¯t help her, let alone give her money. Stop being jealous of her having a rich aunt. ¡°Even if one¡¯s parents have money, they won¡¯t necessarily give it to their children, let alone to a niece they have no feelings for.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. After being coaxed by Hank, Jessica happily followed him to the jewelry store. The couple did not notice that someone had been tailing them and recording their conversation. A chance encounter with a scumbag and his woman would end up affecting one¡¯s mood. After the episode, Liberty simply acted as an escort for Audrey and the others. She pretended to be indifferent in front of Jessica, but in fact, she still felt sick at heart when she saw her ex¨Chusband with his mistress. That was because she felt like she wasted her life acting as a wife devoted to running the household after marriage. Women really had to be kinder to themselves. Take her for example. She was distressed by how hard Hank worked to earn money, so she only ever bought household necessities. She almost never bought new clothes or skin care products for herself. Even when she went shopping, she mostly bought stuff for Hank and Sonny. She was so concerned about Hank, but hevished all his money on Jessica instead. There was a saying that went ¡°if you can¡¯t bear to spend the money earned by your man, someone else will spend it for you.¡± There was the issue of her figure too. Now when Liberty saw the flesh on her body, she regretted it deeply. How did she allow herself to end up so fat? Maybe it was thefortable life after marriage that made her lose her sense of crisis. She thought marriage would be stable after having a child. In the past, her sister told her to take care of her skin and beauty, wear pretty clothes, and apply make¨C up, but she always said, ¡°I¡¯m already married with a son. Why do I need to dress up? I won¡¯t waste money on those products. It isn¡¯t easy for your brother¨Cinw to earn money, and I don¡¯t have an ie, so all the burdens are on your brother¨Cinw. He has a lot of weight on his shoulders, so I¡¯ll save as much as I can for him.¡± She now had to lose weight sessfully and regain her confidence! In the evening, thedies returned to the Stone residence. As soon as they sat down, the housekeeper came over with a small bag. ¡°Madam, someone sent Ms. Serenity a small bag of something. I don¡¯t know what it is, but I was told to pass it to Ms. Serenity.¡± She handed the small bag to Audrey. ¡°Since it¡¯s for Seren, just give it to her.¡± Audrey motioned for the housekeeper to hand over the small bag to Serenity. ¡°Who sent it? What is it?¡± Serenity took the bag suspiciously, opened it up, and found that it was wrapped in a smaller ck bag. When she opened that up as well, she saw two pens and a small note. Chapter 663 Chapter 663 Chapter 663 Serenity first took out the small note. The note read: These two are recorder pens. Listen to the recordings when no one is around. Josh Bucham. It was sent to her by Josh. Recorder pen? What was on the recorder pens that could not be heard by other people? Serenity¡¯s curiosity was killing her. Josh told her to listen to the recording alone, so she could only wait until she returned to her room after dinner. ¡°What is that, Seren? Who sent it to you?¡± Audrey asked with concern. Serenity put the note back into the bag and said, ¡°It¡¯s a pen I want to use. Mrs. Lane had someone send it over to me.¡± Audrey hummed and did not ask more. Curiosity piqued, Serenity finished eating dinner and followed her sister upstairs, saying she was going to help her sister bathe Sonny. The sisters¡® rooms were next to each other. Audrey made the arrangement so the two sisters could rely on each other even in an unfamiliar environment. Serenity went back to her room, closed the door behind her, then hurriedly opened the small ck bag and retrieved the two recorder pens from inside. She sat down in front of the sofa and listened to the recording. When she heard Jessica¡¯s and Hank¡¯s voices, she understood that it was a conversation they had after their chance encounter this afternoon. Josh was truly amazing to be able to record what they said. If Josh were here, he would say, ¡°Thank you for thepliment!¡± Truth be told, Josh was simply nosey. The person he had sent to collect evidence of Hank¡¯s affair was still following Hank because he had not sent the memo to stop the tailing. That was why the person still recorded the conversation. ¡°I¡¯ll find a woman with the face of an angel and the body of a devil to seduce Zachary¡­¡± Serenity listened to what Jessica said to Hank and sneered. ¡°If Zachary can be seduced by another woman, then his name won¡¯t be Zachary.¡± That man was steady. After she got drunk, he was able to hold back from touching her when he helped her change her clothes. It was evident that he was not the kind of man who was impulsive. He was not someone for scum like Hank couldpare to. Serenity took out her phone, opened up WhatsApp, then reyed the contents of the recorder and sent them as voice messages to Zachary. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary soon called her. Serenity declined the call and made a video call to him instead. She missed him and wanted to see him. She also wanted to see if hisplexion was better. Had he seen a doctor and taken medicine? Serenity found her concern for him was growing by the day. At first, she was ted to know that he was going on a business trip. Just a few dayster, she felt the pain of longing. She wanted to fly over and stay with him. Zachary hesitated for a long time before answering the video call. As soon as the call connected, he lowered the phone and put it on speaker so that Serenity could only see his chest. ¡°I can¡¯t see you, Zachary. Raise the phone. Are you doing this on purpose so I can¡¯t see you?¡± Zachary endured his difort and said in a low tone, ¡°I¡¯m working now. What is it? I¡¯m listening.¡± ¡°It¡¯s sote now, but you¡¯re still working? Have you eaten dinner? Also, why are you still working when you have a cold? How much money does your boss give you? Why do you have to work so hard? Nothing is more important than your health.¡± Serenity could not help but scold him when she heard what he had to say. Chapter 664 Chapter 664 Chapter 664 Zachary forced augh and said, ¡°Is my wife taking control of me now? I don¡¯t have an appetite and don¡¯t want to eat. I¡¯m working so hard now because I want to finish work early and go back to you.¡± ¡°Even if you want toe back soon, you have to take care of your health. Are you staying at a hotel now? If you don¡¯t have an appetite, then just eat something light. ¡°Pick up your phone, Zachary. I want to see you.¡± Zachary did not move. Serenity got angry. ¡°Zachary York, I¡¯ll give you till the count of three. If you don¡¯t let me see you, I won¡¯t talk to you for the rest of the year. I won¡¯t answer your calls or reply to your texts either. One¡­¡± As soon as she started counting, Zachary¡¯s face appeared on the screen. He looked miserable. His usually cold and indifferent face was flushed an abnormal red. Serenity was startled and asked, ¡°Didn¡¯t you go see a doctor? You must be running a high fever now. Are you trying to worry me to death?!¡± Zachary propped his head up with his hand and forced himself to say, ¡°I took a cold medicine I bought from the drugstore, but it¡¯s not very effective¡­ Maybe it¡¯s treating the wrong symptoms.¡± ¡°Are you still in the office?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not in the office. I¡¯m in the apartment. Thepany has a few apartments for people from the headquarters to stay in when they travel over.¡± The apartment he was staying in had a study, and he was currently at his desk in said study. He thought his cold would soon clear up after taking the medicine. Unexpectedly, his temperature continued to rise after a few hours. He was feeling more ufortable as well. Zachary¡¯s body had always been healthy and he rarely had colds. As a result, the rare cold that he caught this time was making him suffer. He overestimated his constitution. He thought he could pull through. ¡°Get yourself to the hospital now. Right now! Don¡¯t drive the car yourpany prepared for you. Take a taxi!¡± Serenity ordered him, ¡°Do you hear me? Go to the hospital immediately!¡± She was so anxious. A fully grown man like him did not know how to take care of his cold. Did he not feel ufortable that his temperature was rising? ¡°I think¡­ Seren, I¡¯ll hang up first.¡± Zachary could no longer hang on and hurriedly hung up the phone, afraid that Serenity would be frightened if she saw him faint. He then called the general manager of the branch, trying to ask thetter to send him to the hospital. However, before the call could get through, his vision went ck and he copsed on the table. On the other side, Serenity was startled when Zachary suddenly hung up on her. She wanted to dive into her phone and fly to his side along the radio waves. She sent a voice message to him but he did not reply. She called him again, but he did not answer. ¡°Did he faint?¡± Thinking of his high workload and how he did not have a good rest the past few days because of their quarrel, Serenity felt that he might have actually fainted from fever. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She suddenly got up and ran outside. She had to find Zachary! She was worried about him. However, she stopped when her hand fell on the doorknob. There was something more urgent to attend to now. Zachary¡¯s fever would fry his brain before she got there. She immediately called Jasmine. When the call connected, she quickly said, ¡°Jasmine, what¡¯s Josh¡¯s number? I need to talk to him.¡± Josh and Zachary were colleagues, and Zachary had connections with him. It would be faster to contact people connected to Josh and let them send Zachary to the hospital. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Seren? Wait, Josh is here now. I¡¯ll put him on the phone.¡± Jasmine handed the phone to Josh, who was sitting opposite her. ¡°Mr. Bucham, it¡¯s Seren.¡± Josh thought she was calling about the recording. ¡°Mr. Bucham, Zachary has a cold with a high fever. He may have fainted. Can you contact someone over there to take him to the hospital? Also, can you make arrangements for me to go over there now?¡± Chapter 665 Chapter 665 Chapter 665 Josh looked solemn. ¡®Zachary has always been as fit as a fiddle though. I don¡¯t think he has the flu and fever. Take it easy. I¡¯ll contact someone to drive him to the hospital and make travel arrangements for you to get there. Pack up. You can leave in half an hour. ¡± Now that Zachary was ill and Serenity was worried sick, it was the perfect chance for the couple to bond. While feeling concerned about Zachary¡¯s well-being, Josh secretly moaned about Zachary¡¯s timing to be sick. ¡®Thank you, Mr. Bucham. ¡± Enter title¡­ Serenity was grateful for Josh¡¯s help to get her to Zachary. Josh uttered in a gentle voice, ¡®Zachary is my colleague. I¡¯m worried that he¡¯s sick, and he can be stubborn. He won¡¯t say a word when he¡¯s sick. The bosses and I will feel better if you head there and take care of him. ¡°You might want to get ready now. I¡¯ll give the colleagues there a call to send Zachary to the hospital. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± After the phone call, Serenity got up and picked up the bag with two sets of fresh clothes. Mrs. Lane had delivered the bag to her because Serenity intended to stay at her aunt¡¯s ce for the next two days. She had not unpacked, so this suited her perfectly. There was no further packing required. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. Looking at the caller ID, she realized it was her best friend. Serenity took the call. ¡°Ms. Hunt, you must be at the Stones¡¯ residence. You can get their chauffeur to drive you to the Buchams¡¯ residence. I¡¯ve informed my brother to have a private jet ready for you. It¡¯ll be faster that way. ¡± Zachary had a private ne, but he took it for his business trip. The ne was not presently in Wiltspoon. Even if the ne was avable in Wiltspoon, it would not be the best time to use the Yorks¡¯ private ne to fly her there. All Josh had to do was inform his brother to use the family ne. His brother owned several of those anyway. Serenity appreciated the gesture. Josh went so far as to get a private ne just to fly her there. It was no wonder Zachary hung on tight to Josh¡¯s friendship. Friends in high ces dide with a lot of perks. Once the phone call ended, Serenity grabbed her bag of clothes and hurried out of the room. ¡®Where are you going, Serenity?¡± Serenity was getting a move on when she stumbled upon Clive and his wife who wereing out of their bedroom. ¡°Clive, Alice, my husband¡¯s fallen ill. I need to see him. He might have passed out. Mr. Bucham can arrange a private jet to fly me there. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Clive, can you arrange a car for me to get to the Buchams¡¯ residence? Mr. Bucham told me to wait at his family residence. ¡± Looking serious, Clive asked with concern, ¡®What did your husband catch?¡± It was severe to the point that Zachary fainted. Did Zachary catch something serious that came suddenly? Clive and Zachary were not on the best of terms and were always at each other¡¯s throats, but they would be concerned if one of them was sick. They did not wish death upon their rivals. If Zachary were to pop off, Clive would be without a rival and feel lonely; likewise for Zachary if Clive were to kick the bucket. ¡°He has a nasty cold. I noticed he was in bad shape when I was on video chat with him this afternoon. I told him to get a doctor¡¯s appointment, but he wouldn¡¯t listen. He had gotten some medication from the pharmacy, but it didn¡¯t work. In fact, his flu¡¯s getting worse. I don¡¯t know whether he¡¯s out cold, but he didn¡¯t respond to me when I called and texted him. Halfway through the video call, he said he couldn¡¯t hold out much longer and cut the line. ¡± Clive was speechless at first but soon expressed understanding. In the past, Clive would get the family doctor to prescribe him medicine if he caught a cold. Most of the time, Clive thought nothing of his illness and would simply put up with it for a few days. With Alice around now, everything changed for the better. Alice would be nervous every time he sneezed. She would conjure some home remedies and alternative medicine for him. Prev Chapter 666 Chapter 666 Chapter 666 Alice¡¯s uncle was a doctor who specialized in alternative medicine. Whenever a family member was not feeling well, Alice would go to her uncle and ask for a remedy. Clive really could not stand the awful taste of alternative medicine. Hence, he looked after himself and tried not to get sick. He would hide from his wife if he had the asional sniffles. Serenity¡¯s worry for Zachary was like Alice¡¯s worry for him. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Clive soothed Serenity, ¡°Don¡¯t let your nerves get the best of you. You want to get to the Enter title¡­ Buchams¡¯ residence? I¡¯ll drive you there. ¡± ¡®Thank you, Clive. ¡± Tilting his head, Clive told his wife, ¡°Wait for me at home, Alice. I¡¯ll drive Serenity to the Buchams¡¯. I don¡¯t feel good getting someone else to drive her. ¡± Alice replied, ¡°Sure. Go ahead. ¡± ¡°Clive, Alice, the chauffeur can drive me if you have something to do. ¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Liberty had just gotten her son out of the shower when she heard her sister talking in the hallway. With Sonny in her arms, she walked out of the room and popped a question. Noticing the bag in her sister¡¯s hand, she asked, ¡°Where are you going, Seren?¡± ¡°Zachary¡¯s sick. I need to see him, Liberty. ¡± Following the mention of Zachary¡¯s name, Clive and his wife nervously looked at the stairway. It was a good thing their mother and sister were on the first floor, so they could not hear Serenity. ¡°He¡¯s sick? Is it bad? Does he need to be hospitalized?¡± Liberty asked worriedly, ¡°Did he overtire himself?¡± For her sister to rush there, stat, the man must be in the hospital. Liberty¡¯s mind wandered far. What would her sister do if the unthinkable were to happen to Zachary? The couple had only been married for a few months, and the wedding had not been organized. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Liberty. It¡¯s only a cold. He tried to tough it out, but it got worse. I¡¯m worried about him, so I need to see him. I¡¯ll be back once he¡¯s all better. ¡®Tm heading to the Buchams¡¯ residence now, Liberty. His colleague will arrange a private ne for me to get there. ¡± Hearing that her brother-inw caught a cold, Liberty did not feel as tense as before. She said, ¡°Hurry there then. ¡± Clive jumped in. ¡¯Tm driving Serenity to the Buchams¡¯, Liberty. ¡± ¡°Alright. Thank you, Clive. ¡± Clive and Liberty were born in the same year, but Clive was a few months older than Liberty. ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. ¡± Clive, Alice, and Liberty walked with Serenity down the stairs. ¡°Aunt Audrey. ¡± Serenity had to let Mrs. Stone know since she was leaving. Serenity uttered, ¡°Aunt Audrey, my husband isn¡¯t feeling well. I need to head there to take care of him for a few days. I might not be able to make it back for the party tomorrow night. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Aunt Audrey. ¡± The Stones was hosting the party just for the sisters. Yet, Serenity would not be able to make it. She felt sorry about it. Mrs. Stone asked with concern, ¡°How¡¯s your husband doing now? It¡¯s okay. You can go and care for him. Don¡¯t force yourself to rush back to the party if you can¡¯t. I don¡¯t want you to tire yourself out. Your sister and Sonny are here anyway. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s a bad case of cold and fever. He¡¯s a heedless and stubborn man. He likes to tough it out on his own. I fear his illness might worsen if I¡¯m not there to watch him. ¡± Mrs. Stone answered, ¡°It¡¯s the same for all the men. How are you getting there?¡± Chapter 667 Chapter 667 Chapter 667 ¡°His boss made arrangements for me to get there. I need to rush there now,¡± Serenity replied. ¡®You should hurry there then. His boss will probably have a private ne ready for you if he approves the arrangement. You¡¯ll get there quicker. Clive, you should take Seren there. ¡± Mrs. Stone thought the boss Serenity mentioned was Zachary. Knowing that the Yorks had a private jet, she felt assured enough to let Serenity go. Several minutester, Clive drove Serenity out of the Stones¡¯ residence. Enter title¡­ While on the way, Clive said to Serenity, ¡°I have a somewhat unreasonable request to ask of you, Serenity. ¡± ¡°Do say, Clive. ¡± While behind the wheel, Clive said, ¡®You must know that Elisa was in love with Mr. York. Although she said she would let go of her feelings for him, you can¡¯t stop loving someone after going at it for years. It would take some time before she could embrace reality wholeheartedly. ¡± Serenity¡¯s mind harked back to Shawn. This was the case with Shawn toward her as well. Shawn knew it was wrong to pester her, but he could not control himself. He could not let go of his feelings for her right away. ¡°I know. ¡± Serenity added, ¡°It¡¯s easy to fall in love, but it¡¯s hard to forget someone you love dearly. ¡± She had never really experienced love before. However, she had developed feelings for Zachary. The thought that she and Zachary may one day break up made her upset. It would take her a long time to get over it and boldly face reality. Serenity could detach herself. Still, it was easier said than done. How many people could actually do it? ¡°I think you should refrain from mentioning your husband and hispany to Elisa. Elisa would think about Mr. York if York Corporation was mentioned. Since your husband¡¯sst name is also York, it would drift Elisa¡¯s mind to Mr. York. ¡± It never crossed Serenity¡¯s mind that Clive would make such a request. After much thought. Serenity believed Clive had a point. Although her husband had no rtions to the wealthy and great Mr. York, they still shared the same last name. There was a possibility that Elisa would be reminded of Mr. York just by the mention of the surname. ¡®You¡¯re right, Clive. I¡¯ll stop talking about my husband in front of Elisa. ¡± At least, she did not intend to say her husband¡¯sst name out loud. Feeling bad, Clive uttered, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Serenity. It¡¯s an imposing request. Please understand that I¡¯m looking out for my sister. ¡°I disapprove of her going for Mr. York. Elisa can¡¯t handle Mr. York. He didn¡¯t like her anyway, but she refused to listen. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. She needed to fall on her own to move on. ¡°She may look happy every day as if nothing ever happened, but she feels down. She hides her pain behind her smile. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°It¡¯s better to smile than to cry through life. I understand the pain Elisa¡¯s hiding, but I believe she¡¯ll get over it soon. She¡¯ll meet a man for herself. ¡± Clive answered, ¡°I hope she¡¯ll move on soon enough. ¡± He was thinking about keeping her sister away when Zachary was to return and visit his mother. Only his parents should know that Serenity¡¯s husband was Zachary. Clive trusted that his parents would do the same as he and Alice would in keeping the matter from Elisa. ¡°Elisa is a nice girl. She¡¯s strong. I believe she¡¯ll meet a good man. ¡± Clive said with a smile, ¡°No wonder Elisa hit it off and got along with you before knowing you were cousins. She sees you as a friend. You¡¯re the first to say that she¡¯s a nice girl. ¡®The public doesn¡¯t take well to Elisa. Many heiresses think Elisa is arrogant and willful. There were people making fun of her when she went after Mr. York. She doesn¡¯t have many real friends. ¡± ¡°I think Elisa is a sensitive girl. She doesn¡¯t care about putting up a fa?ade. You get what you see. She doesn¡¯t have to be pretentious because she has the means to live life the way she wants. She doesn¡¯t care what anyone else has to say. ¡± Clive responded, ¡°You don¡¯t know Elisa for long, but you have a good idea of her personality. Serenity, you¡¯re a good judge of character. ¡± Chapter 668 Chapter 668 Chapter 668 The only person that Serenity was wrong about was Zachary. Then again, Serenity was fooled by Zachary¡¯s whole family. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. The cousins shared a pleasant conversation along the way that the journey felt short to Serenity. Soon, they arrived at the Buchams¡¯ residence. Josh was not back. He was still having dinner with Jasmine and her brother. Jasmine was concerned about her best friend, but her mind was at ease since Josh had everything sorted out. Enter title¡­ Serenity had just arrived at the Buchams¡¯ residence when Jasmine gave her a call. Jasmine felt better after confirming Serenity was at the residence. ¡®Thank goodness Mr. Bucham stepped in to help tonight, Jasmine. Please thank him for me. I¡¯ll personally express my gratitude to him when I return. ¡± Sure, Josh was Zachary¡¯s colleague. He could simply do his due and inform a colleague there to send Zachary to the hospital. However, Josh went above and beyond at sorting everything out when Serenity said she wanted to be there. Josh even let her use his family¡¯s private ne. Serenity had to thank the man personally for such a huge favor. ¡°I will. Go on and take care of Zachary. Josh said you should get the doctor to give him a few jabs. It will serve as a reminder that he shouldn¡¯t try to tough it out when he catches a cold next time. Apparently, Zachary*s afraid of needles. ¡± Serenity replied, ¡°Mr. Bucham¡¯s idea is mean, but it sounds like a n. I can use this to my advantage and teach him a lesson. ¡± Zachary scared her silly this time. ¡°I¡¯m getting on the ne now, Jasmine. I¡¯ll call you once all is okay. ¡± ¡°Sure. Go on then. I¡¯m having my dinner. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m jealous,¡± Serenitymented. Jasmine smiled. ¡°Let¡¯s get together and have a nice dinner when Zachary¡¯s back from his business. ¡± ¡°Okay. ¡± After the call ended, Serenity got into the Buchams¡¯ private ne. ¡°Send us a text message when you arrive there, Serenity,¡± Clive urged. Nodding her head, Serenity waved her cousin off. The ne took off and flew her overnight to Zachary. It was just like when she went drinking at a bar. Zachary was worried after finding out and rushed overnight to her side. It was her turn to be worried about him. She was rushing there now. They gave each other the cold shoulder during fights, conflicts, and silent treatments. The couple was also anxious if something were to happen to each other. This might be love. Clive waited until the ne flew afar before thanking the Buchams¡¯ butler. He then got into his car and drove away from the Buchams¡¯ residence. Zachary had no idea that Serenity was on her way to him. By the time he came to, he was at the hospital. The manager and deputy manager of the branchpany stood by his bed. ¡®You¡¯re awake, Mr. York. ¡± The manager looked relieved the moment Zachary opened his eyes. Chapter 669 Chapter 669 Chapter 669 The manager would be to me If anything were to happen to Mr. York. The headquarters had full confidence in him and entrusted him with a managerial role at the subsidiary company. Yet, the subsidiarypany went south fast to the point the CEO had to be here to deal with it. The CEO caught a bad cold and fever from tiring himself out. Thankfully, it was detected early. Otherwise, the CEO¡¯s life would be at risk if the illness dragged on. The manager had lingering fears at the mere thought of it. ¡°Where am I?¡± Zachary tried to sit up. ¡°Don¡¯t get up, Mr. York. Lie down, lie down. You still have a fever. You¡¯re on IV drips. ¡± Furrowing his brows, Zachary¡¯s memory came back to him. He took a cold medicine from the pharmacy, but it did not work. His temperature kept rising until he passed out in the end. Zachary was on a video call with Serenity before he cked out. He ended the call before Serenity could catch him passing out on her. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Zachary wondered if Serenity was worried. ¡°Were you the ones who took me to the hospital?¡± Instead of sitting up, Zachary felt his head and realized he was still burning. ¡°Mr. Bucham called me, so I used the spare key to get into your apartment. I took you to the hospital because you were unconscious. Mr. York, the medicine you bought didn¡¯t do much for you. You should¡¯ve gone to the hospital early on. You gave us a scare. ¡± Zachary was burning at 41 degrees Celsius by the time he reached the hospital. His body temperature was measured at 38. 9 degrees Celsius right now. The nurse was just here to check on his temperature. The doctor said that Zachary got the viral flu. The fever woulde and go together with a cough. Since Zachary had passed out from burning up, the doctor suggested he remain in the hospital for a few days. Of course, the manager did not dare bring it up to Zachary for fear thetter refused to be hospitalized. Mr. Bucham mentioned that the CEO¡¯s wife was rushing here. She must be on the way. Once the CEO¡¯s wife was here, the manager would exin Mr. York¡¯s situation to her, so she could make the CEO stay in the hospital. The manager of the subsidiarypany could sigh in relief. ¡°Josh?¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was hoarse. ¡°How did he know that I was unwell?¡± ¡°Your wife contacted Mr. Bucham. ¡± Zachary got it. ¡°Do you want some water, Mr. York?¡± ¡°Yes,¡± Zachary responded. The deputy manager immediately went to pour Zachary a ss of water. The manager tried to help Zachary sit up, but Zachary refused. He could handle it so long as he did not use his hand which was on IV drips. ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s the doctor¡¯s orders that you take the pills when you wake up. ¡± The managers pulled out a small bag of prescriptions from the doctor. Zachary could take medicine with the water. Zachary did not turn down the pills. He drank half a ss of water before swallowing thest of it with the pills. ¡°Are you hungry, Mr. York?¡± Zachary shook his head. He did not have an appetite at the moment. There was a scratchy feeling in his throat. With the deputy manager pouring him another ss of water, Zachary downed the drink. ¡°How high is my temperature now?¡± Zachary asked in a raspy voice. ¡°The fever isn¡¯t gone yet. You were at 38. 9 degrees Celsius just now. The doctor suggested that you stay at the hospital for observation. ¡± Zachary looked at the sky through the window. It was dark outside. Looking at the time, he realized it was past midnight. Since he was still on IV drips, and the fever had not subsided, it appeared he had to spend the night in the hospital. ¡°Did you bring my phone with you?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± The manager quickly handed Zachary¡¯s phone to him. ¡°It¡¯ste. You should get home for some rest. I¡¯ll call the nurse to rece the IV fluid when I¡¯m done with this bag. How many IV fluid bags do I have to be on?¡± ¡®Three bags. ¡± Zacharymented, ¡®That¡¯s a lot¡­¡± He stared at the IV fluid bag, wishing it could drip faster. Chapter 670 Chapter 670 Chapter 670 ¡°Mr. York, don¡¯t try to adjust the drip. The nurse mentioned that you can¡¯t rush the IV drip. ¡± The manager stopped Zachary from adjusting the speed of the IV drips. Zachary helplessly gave up. ¡°We¡¯ll wait until your wife is here before heading home, Mr. York. ¡± Zachary abruptly lifted his head and stared at the two men. ¡°Is Serening over?¡± The two men nodded in unison. ¡°Mr. Bucham said that your wife is worried about you and insisted oning here to take care of you. Mr. Bucham arranged for a private ne to fly her here. She should be arriving any minute now. ¡± Zachary tried to get out of bed. ¡°The missus will give me a call when she gets off the ne, Mr. York. Mr. Bucham has given her my phone number. Don¡¯t worry, Mr. York. I¡¯ll get the missus here safe and sound. ¡± Zachary sat back down and gave Serenity a call. He intended to wait until dawn before contacting her. It never urred to him that Serenity would rush here. It gave Zachary a feeling that Serenity put him first. Since Serenity did not pick up the call, she must still be on the ne. ¡°Can you get chicken soup now? in soup would do too. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go out and check if it¡¯s sold in any shop. Are you fancying some soup now?¡± ¡°Yeah. Get me some soup and some fresh fruit. Oh, get a few desserts too. ¡± The managermented, ¡°Mr. York¡­ You can¡¯t have desserts. ¡± ¡°They¡¯re for my wife. ¡± With realization hitting the manager, he said with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll see if any shops are open. The hospital is on a street of restaurants and cafes. ¡± These restaurants and cafes operated at midnight too. There was also a 24 ¨C hour bakery. The manager exchanged a few words with the deputy manager before rushing out to get Zachary some chicken soup, fresh fruits, and a few exquisite desserts. He even made the call to buy a carton of milk. He had just delivered the items to the ward when he received a call from Serenity. Serenity had gotten off the ne. The manager hurried back out to pick Serenity up. Zachary told the manager not to call her the CEO¡¯s wife when he met with Serenityter. ¡°Um¡­ How should I address the missus?¡± ¡°Herst name¡¯s Hunt. You can call her Ms. Hunt or Mrs. York. ¡± Although the manager was puzzled by the request, he did as his boss told him to. Half an hourter, Serenity emerged in Zachary¡¯s ward. ¡°Hello, Ms. Hunt,¡± the deputy manager got up and greeted Serenity. ¡°Hello, how is Zachary now? Is he not awake yet?¡± Serenity¡¯s gaze fell on Zachary the moment she walked into the ward. Seeing that Zachary was asleep, she thought he was still out cold. The deputy manager replied, ¡°Mr. York might be drowsy from the medicine. He fell asleep just before you arrived. ¡± The truth was, Mr. York went to bed about two minutes ago. The deputy manager dared say that Mr. York was pretending to be asleep. Serenity sat on his bed. Reaching out, she stroked his face and said, ¡°Is he still burning?¡± ¡°Mr. York has the viral flu. His fever wille and go. Plus, he fainted from the high fever. The doctor rmended that he stays in the hospital for a few days. He can be discharged from the hospital once the fever subsides and the coughing stops,¡± the manager replied instead. Zachary, ying the sleeping prince, had his eyshes fluttered. He could not believe that the doctor wanted to keep him in the hospital for a few days. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. It would prolong his business trip. Who was the doctor that examined him? It was merely a cold with a fever. Yet, he was asked to remain at the hospital for days! Chapter 671 Chapter 671 Chapter 671 Serenity said, ¡°Okay. We¡¯ll do as the doctor said. We¡¯ll keep him in the hospital for a few days until he¡¯s well enough to be discharged. His work¡­ His sry¡­¡± With Zachary in the hospital, Serenity was hoping to get him to rest for a few days. His boss owned thepany. Thepany was not Zachary¡¯s, so why must he devote his everything when he was sick? The manager jumped in. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Hunt. We¡¯ll take over Mr. York¡¯s work. We promise that we won¡¯t bother him about work while he¡¯s in the hospital. Mr. York is on a business trip, so his sry is not affected. ¡± Enter title¡­ York Corporation belonged to Mr. York. Yet, the CEO¡¯s wife was asking about Mr. York¡¯s sry. She was worried whether his sry would be cut since he had to remain in the hospital. ¡®Thank you. ¡± Serenity expressed her gratitude, under the impression that she got her man a few days of paid leave. ¡°Ms. Hunt, do you need us here to look after Mr. York?¡± Serenity asked, ¡°How many bags of IV fluid does he need to be on?¡± ¡°One more bag and he¡¯s done. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll stay with him. I came here to look after him anyway. ¡± The manager uttered gratefully, ¡®Thank you foring all the way to take care of Mr. York. It makes things a lot easier for us. ¡± They had intended to assign their secretary to look after Zachary, but Zachary had a thing against young women getting close to him. In the end, they gave up on the idea of getting the secretary here. With the CEO¡¯s wife here, it showed that she felt deeply for Mr. York. The manager and deputy manager were envious of their rtionship. Although they had no idea when Mr. York had gotten married, the woman must be the CEO¡¯s wife because Mr. Bucham said so. Another thing was that they did not have to face Mr. York, who hated the hospital so much, all day every day. ¡°Here are a few desserts Mr. York got for you, Ms. Hunt. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. We have fresh fruit and milk too. I¡¯ll pay you for your time toe here and care for Mr. York. Come to the office to see me when Mr. York is discharged from the hospital. ¡± Serenity did not refuse the manager¡¯s offer to pay for her time. The way she saw it, her man had to go off on a business trip for thepany during the weekend and ended up in the hospital from a nasty cold. Serenity had no qualms about epting the pay for taking care of Zachary. ¡°Ms. Hunt, we got to go. Call us if you need anything. ¡± The manager said before leaving together with the deputy manager. Once out of the ward, the deputy manager said to his boss, ¡°Mr. Tank, Mr. York is pretending to be asleep?¡± ¡°Pretending?¡± Mr. Tank was puzzled. ¡°I thought Mr. York was asleep. ¡± ¡°Mr. York can y pretend all he wants. Mr. Bucham said that we can leave Mr. York to the CEO¡¯s wife when she gets here. The missus will have everything covered. We¡¯re safe once she¡¯s here. ¡± ¡®Though, I never heard from headquarters that Mr. York was married. ¡± The deputy manager gossiped as they walked away. Mr. Tank turned his head and replied, ¡°Whatever Mr. Bucham says can¡¯t go wrong. We¡¯re far from Wiltspoon. It¡¯s a two-hour journey by flight, so of course, we don¡¯t know about Mr. York¡¯s marriage. Based on my observations, the missus doesn¡¯t seem to know about Mr. York¡¯s real position in the company. ¡± She mentioned Mr. York¡¯s sry. ¡°Mr. York told me to buy some fruits and desserts when he found out that Ms. Hunt was on her way over. I can tell from these gestures that Mr. York is good to Ms. Hunt. ¡± The deputy managerplimented, ¡°You have a keen observation, Mr. Tank. ¡± Serenity was in the dark about the conversation between the managers. She stared at Zachary who was in bed and felt his head from time to time. With each touch, the frown on her face deepened. Zachary¡¯s temperature had not gone down. After feeling his temperature once more, Serenity sat down on a chair by the bed. She pulled out her phone to send her sister and the others a text message to inform them that she was at the hospital with Zachary. She told her sister about Zachary¡¯s condition. Serenitv then sent Jasmine a messaoe. Chapter 672 Chapter 672 Chapter 672 With the messages sent out, Serenity stuffed the phone back into her pocket. Everybody must be asleep since it waste at night. She did not count on receiving an immediate reply. Zachary gradually came around. Opening his eyes, Zachary deliberately made a bewildered face as if he could not believe Serenity was here. He lifted his free hand and rubbed his eyes while mumbling to himself, ¡°Is the fever getting to me? Are my eyes deceiving me? Why is my Seren here?¡± 1 Enter title¡­ Serenity pulled his arm away from his face and gave him a hard pinch on the hand. ¡°Owl¡± ¡°Does it hurt?¡± Serenity asked him. Zachary pulled those cute puppy dog eyes. ¡°It hurts. It hurts so bad. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s good that you felt the pain. You¡¯re not dreaming. This is reality. I told you I¡¯ll make my way here if you don¡¯t get a doctor¡¯s appointment. ¡± Zachary was about to sit up. ¡°Lie down. You¡¯re in a hospital. You¡¯re still burning up. I don¡¯t know why you want to tough it out. ¡± Serenity pressed him down. ¡°Now lie yourself down. How do you feel now?¡± ¡°My temperature has gone down but notpletely. My throat feels sore. Even my voice is hoarse. Cough, cough¡­¡± Zachary hacked his throat. ¡°I¡¯m starting to cough. Seren, can you ask the nurse for a mask? I have a viral cold, so you might get it from me. ¡± He reached out to press the call button above his head. Once the nurse answered the call, he said to the nurse, ¡°Can you give me two masks?¡± ¡°Why do you need the masks?¡± the nurse inquired. Zachary answered in a raspy voice, ¡°I have the viral flu, and my wife¡¯s here to take care of me. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Can you give the masks to my wife? I don¡¯t want to spread the flu to my wife. ¡± The nurse ended themunication. Soon, the nurse came knocking on the door and delivered two medical masks. ¡®Thank you. ¡± Serenity expressed her thanks and put on a mask. Zachary said, ¡°You should grab a couple more packs of these marks from the pharmacy when it¡¯s morning. You better have a mask on around me before I get better. I don¡¯t want you to be sick while I¡¯m sick too. ¡± ¡°Sure. Is the chicken soup for you?¡± Noticing the takeaway chicken soup, Serenity put her hand out to feel the container. It was still warm. ¡°It¡¯s mine. Mr. Tank bought it for me. I was asleep, so I hadn¡¯t eaten. ¡± ¡°Do you want to have it now?¡± Raising his right arm, Zachary uttered helplessly, ¡°My right hand is still on drips. I can¡¯t really eat with my left hand. ¡± Serenity helped him to sit up before taking out the container of soup. She remarked, ¡°I¡¯ve seen you using utensils with both hands. You had no problems then. You can just be straight that you want me to feed you. ¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes were gleaming. ¡°Did I? I don¡¯t remember. It¡¯s not convenient to eat with my hands now. Seren, I¡¯ll find the chicken soup a gourmet if you feed me. ¡± ¡°You should get a doctor to examine you if you don¡¯t feel well next time. Work is important, but it isn¡¯t more important than your health. You work for your boss, and thepany doesn¡¯t belong to you. Do you need to give your boss your life?¡± Serenity nagged while spooning him the soup. Chapter 673 Chapter 673 Chapter 673 Zachary retorted in his mind, ¡®Thepany does belong to me. ¡¯ Serenity went on saying, ¡°Is Mr. Tank the manager here at the subsidiarypany? That¡¯s how he introduced himself. ¡°He said you¡¯ll need to remain in the hospital for a few days. You don¡¯t need to do anything but rest. You might appear healthy, but all the work and tiredness finally caught up to you. Your immune system went down, and now you got one nasty cold. ¡°You¡¯re on paid medical leave. Mr. Tank asked me to look after you and will be paying me on the clock. At least, they had everything thought out for you. ¡± least, they had everything thought out for you. ¡± Enter title¡­ Serenity was impressed by the subsidiarypany of a huge corporation. Every aspect was considered thoroughly as family members were offered some form of remuneration without needing to ask for it. Zachary enjoyed his chicken soup while thinking to himself, ¡®It¡¯s my money nheless. ¡¯ However, it was not something he had the guts to blurt out. ¡°How long do I have to be in the hospital? It¡¯s only a cold and fever. I want to be out by morning. All I need is to rest at the apartment. I can juste to the hospital for daily IV drips if required. I don¡¯t want to stay at the hospital. I hate hospitals the most. ¡± Serenity peevishly retorted, ¡°Who likes the hospital anyway? But you¡¯re sick. You won¡¯t get better if you stay away from hospital treatments. Look at you. The medicine you got from the pharmacy didn¡¯t do you any good. You were unconscious. While on the way here, I was worried the fever might cause you permanent neurological probleMs.¡± Shuddering at that thought, Zachary immediately responded, ¡°I¡¯m a lot better now. No permanent damage whatsoever. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s the doctor¡¯s orders!¡± ¡°Seren¡­¡± ¡°The doctor¡¯s orders!¡± Zachary¡¯s face fell. ¡°It¡¯s boring in the hospital. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be here with you. I don¡¯t think it¡¯s boring or a hassle, so who are you toin?¡± Zachary was speechless. He was d that Josh sent his wife here to take care of him since it had not been long ago when the couple had another fight. The illness could bring the couple back together again. However, Serenity had him on a tight leash since she set foot into the hospital. ¡°Or do you want me to go home now? I won¡¯t stay and look after you if you don¡¯t remain in the hospital. Aunt Audrey¡¯s hosting a party just for Liberty and I. Since you don¡¯t require care in the hospital, I can rush back and make it to the party. ¡± Zachary quickly held her hands. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll stay in the hospital. Your word is mymand. ¡± ¡°Not mine. You should be listening to the doctor. ¡± In his mind, Zachary cussed the doctor who rmended the hospital stay. Nevertheless, seeing that Serenity thoughtfully fed him the chicken soup, Zachary could let go of the resentment. Well, he might as well enjoy the hospital stay. He was living the life as his wife was giving him all the attention. After feeding Zachary the chicken soup, Serenity pulled out some tissue to wipe his mouth. Her thoughtfulness tempted Zachary to pull her into his arms and kiss her a thousand times. It was a shame that he had a cold now. It was a viral infection too. He could not kiss her for fear of infecting her. ¡°Seren. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡± Serenity stared at him. Zachary coughed. He did not experience coughing yesterday. Now, his throat was itchy. ¡°Can you kiss me here with the mask on?¡± Zachary touched his cheek, gesturing for Serenity to kiss him there. Serenity was at a loss for words. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary¡¯s voice trailed. Chapter 674 Chapter 674 Chapter 674 Serenity immediately put her arms up in surrender as she eximed, ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t talk that way. It doesn¡¯t sound good when you elongate your creaky voice. You¡¯re trying to act cute, but it¡¯s not working. You sound like you¡¯re going through puberty. Fine, I¡¯ll kiss you, okay? Stop the cute act. It¡¯s giving me the creeps. ¡± Zachary stared at Serenity begrudgingly. It was not like he wanted to do it. He did not know how to act cute anyway. Thankfully, his voice had turned hoarse. Without the raspy voice, Serenity would call him out for using the high pitch tone. Enter title¡­ Never mind. He could forget the mo¨¦ act. Serenity gave Zachary what he wanted and tenderly kissed him on the cheek. She asked, ¡°Happy now?¡± During the kiss, Zachary closed his eyes and felt the affectionate tingle on his cheek. Although he could not feel the warmth as she had a mask on, Zachary could feel the love she had for him. That was right-love. Zachary was content. It left him more satisfied than when she flirted with him and their tongues danced along. The way Serenity kissed him right now was without the usual banter. Serenity reached out to caress his face while demonstrating the heartache in her eyes. She said, ¡± You¡¯re thirty now, and yet you don¡¯t know how to take care of yourself. You make me all worried. Look at you. You lost a lot of weight. I bet you¡¯ve been skipping meals during your business trip. ¡± Grabbing her arm, Zachary held her hands against his face as he locked his tender eyes on her beautiful face. face as he locked his tender eyes on her beautiful face. He whispered, ¡°Thest thing I expected was to catch a cold. I didn¡¯t mean to make you worry about me. I didn¡¯t have the appetite since you weren¡¯t here to eat with me. Plus, the piling work andck of appetite caused me to drop in weight. ¡± Truth be told, he did not lose any weight. Nevertheless, he must have slimmed down if his wife said so. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. He was what his wife said. ¡°Who would expect to get sick? You should put onyers. It¡¯s colder here than in Wiltspoon. Zachary refuted, ¡°I showered in cold water¡­¡± ¡°You showered in cold water? No wonder you got sick. ¡± Serenity¡¯s hand resting against his face immediately went for a pinch. ¡°Are you trying to show off? Taking a cold shower in the middle of winter? Do you want me to pour a bucket of ice on you while you shower? I can guarantee that it will be more than refreshing. ¡± Zachary looked at her with his eyes burning with passion. Serenity did not get it in the beginning, but the look on Zachary¡¯s face brought her back to the time he changed her clothes¡­ That must be the reason for the cold shower. Drawing her arm back, Serenity acted like nothing ever happened and grabbed the pills by the bedside table. She took a look and asked, ¡°When are you supposed to take these? Is it time for your medicine?¡± ¡°I think I have to take them in another hour or so. I¡¯m still on IV drips, so I don¡¯t need any more medicine. Pills have side effects too, you know. ¡± Serenity responded, ¡°That¡¯s true. I¡¯ll ask the doctor to give you a jab when hees for his rounds in the morning. Injections work faster, and you usually only need to take it once. ¡± Zachary was speechless. He hated medicine, butpared to jabs, he would rather take the pills. Injections were the worst. It would kill him just to take one jab. ¡°There¡¯s some fruits and desserts, Seren. Do you want some?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not hungry now. ¡± Serenity looked at the time before sitting down on the bed for apanying family members. Pulling her phone out, she said to Zachary as she got ready to pass the time on videos, ¡°Get some sleep. I¡¯ll wake you when it¡¯s time for your medicine. I¡¯ll sleep when you¡¯re done with the IV drips. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll watch the time. You can sleep. I just woke up, so I don¡¯t feel like sleeping now. ¡± Zachary felt bad to let his wife stay up all night. Serenity moved her gaze away from her mobile screen and to his face. She told him off, ¡°Are you the patient, or am I the patient? I¡¯m here to look after you. You better be snoring, or I¡¯ll feel bad for getting the sry from Mr. Tank. ¡± Zachary was lost for words. Chapter 675 Chapter 675 Chapter 675 Seeing that Zachary was still staring at her, Serenity put her phone aside and got up. She drew close and kissed him on the cheek. Tenderly she uttered, ¡°Go on to bed now. ¡± Serenity then touched his head. ¡°Is there a thermometer here? I¡¯ll check on your temperature. You still feel hot. You¡¯re on IV drips and the pills already, but the fever hasn¡¯t really gone down. ¡± Zachary replied in all honesty, ¡°I don¡¯t know if there¡¯s a thermometer here too. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll ask for one at the nurse¡¯s station. ¡± Enter title¡­ Serenity grabbed her phone and took off. Zachary¡¯s phone happened to ring when she left the room. It was Josh. Zachary took the call. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you asleep thiste in the night?¡± ¡°I have the habit of checking my phone when I wake up. I saw the message from your wife that she made it there safe and sound. Since I was awake, I thought I might as well call to check on you. Has your fever gone down?¡± Zachary faintly said, ¡°Notpletely. The doctor said I had to stay in the hospital for a few days. They¡¯re just making more money out of me. ¡± That was the mentality of patients. Patients themselves believed they were not sickly, and the doctor¡¯s orders to be kept for observation in the hospital were only a ruse to make more money. The great Mr. York did not care about money, but he hated to lie on his back in the hospital all day. hated to lie on his back in the hospital all day. He would have discharged himself first thing in the morning if Serenity had note over. Now, he would be bound to the bed for days. Zachary had never been hospitalized since he was born. ¡°It¡¯s not like you don¡¯t have the money. Just listen to the doctor. I sent your wife over to take care of you. You can use the time to patch things with your wife. ¡± Zachary grimaced. ¡°Patch things? Things are fine between us. ¡± ¡°Heh. ¡± Josh had grown ustomed to Zachary¡¯s stubbornness. A certain somebody got into a huge fight with his wife because of something small. That somebody even gave his wife the snub. Yet, he flew back the second he heard his wife go drinking at a bar. Zachary had been contradicting himself since day one. ¡°Did the Stones give you an invitation to their party?¡± ¡°Yeah. I intend to attend the event. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t betray you. ¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Seren will think there are sparks between us if she were to hear you. I¡¯ll beat you up if youe between us. ¡± ¡°How can Ie between you when you guys are solid? I don¡¯t even have a wife yet, but I¡¯m working on it. I¡¯ll be the one in trouble if Ms. Sox thinks I swing the other way and have a thing for you. ¡°The Stones also invited Ms. Sox to the party. ¡± Josh added thest sentence to exin his attendance at the event. ¡°My wife¡¯sing back. I¡¯m going to end the call. ¡± With Zachary¡¯s ears picking up on the familiar footsteps outside, he added to Josh, ¡°Don¡¯t call me unless it¡¯s an emergency while I¡¯m trying to get my health back. ¡± ¡°Your wifeing back doesn¡¯t interfere with our phone call, no?¡± ¡°I¡¯m a patient now. My wife is strict and wants me to rest. ¡± Josh was speechless. Why did he get the feeling that Zachary was showing off his rtionship again? The guy was unting that someone was caring for him during his time of sickness. Zachary hung up and put the phone back before lying down like nothing ever happened and closing his eyes. He only opened his eyes when Serenity entered the room. Serenity brought the thermometer over and checked on his temperature. She also noted the time. Serenity then sat on the bed and whipped out her phone to watch videos. A few minutester, Serenity took the thermometer from his armpit and looked at it before uttering, ¡°Your temperature is down to thirty-eight degrees Celsius. ¡± She could rest a little now. Chapter 676 Chapter 676 Chapter 676 ¡°Do you want some water?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t feel like drinking any. I don¡¯t want to rush to the loo so often. It¡¯s not very convenient for me to go to the loo right now. ¡± Serenity had no words. Since Zachary did not want to sleep, Serenity stopped watching videos on her phone and chatted with him. She did most of the talking while he listened intently. As she bbered on, Zachary¡¯s eyes grew heavy until he finally drifted into slumbend. Once the bag of IV fluid hooked to Zachary was empty, Serenity rang the nurse to change a new bag before returning to the dependent¡¯s bed and getting on her phone. Enter title¡­ However, her eyes began to grow heavy as well. She could barely stay awake. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. In case she fell asleep, Serenity put down her phone and got out of bed to head to the loo. She removed her mask and sshed her face with cold water to freshen up. Serenity waited until thest bag of IV fluid was emptied before waking Zachary up for his medicine. It was only then she caught up on sleep. The following day, Serenity was woken up by her ringing phone. It was her sister. ¡°Liberty. ¡± ¡°Seren, how is Zachary doing?¡± Liberty asked with concern. Sitting up, Serenity looked at Zachary who was in bed. He was still asleep. She went over and felt his forehead. Realizing it was hot, she said, ¡°His temperature went down to thirty-eight degrees Celsius before I went to bed. He¡¯s feverish again. ¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t he in the hospital?¡± ¡°He¡¯s caught the viral flu. The doctor said his fever wille and go. It¡¯s okay, Liberty. Don¡¯t worry. Is Sonny up yet?¡± ¡°Not yet. ¡± Liberty urged, ¡°Take care of yourself too. Don¡¯t overtire yourself. ¡± ¡°I will, Liberty. ¡± The sisters chatted for a while before ending the call. Serenity looked at the time and woke Zachary up for another round of medication. By the time the doctor made his rounds, Zachary¡¯s temperature went down once more. He looked better too. Mr. Tank dropped by to deliver a hot breakfast to the couple. Mr. Tank¡¯s wife made breakfast for them. Serenity continued to feed Zachary spoon by spoon. She believed she should do a better job in Mr. Tank¡¯s presence since she was taking a sry from him. Otherwise, Mr. Tank would think she was not worth thepay. Watching the scene unfold, Mr. Tank thought the CEO¡¯s wife was really good to Mr. York. She was considerate and gentle. No wonder Mr. York doted on his wife. Gentleness could soften a hardened heart. Plus, Mr. York was kinder in attitude toward him. Mr. York did not object to the doctor¡¯s rmendation to remain in the hospital. Mr. Bucham was right. With the CEO¡¯s wife around, she would have everything covered and save their *sses. ¡°Doctor, can my husband¡¯s medicine be switched to a jab instead?¡± Serenity asked the doctor. Zachary was rendered speechless. Did he really need a shot? Why did he have to bring up the side effects of the medicine? The doctor replied, ¡°He can take a shot, but injections tend to be potent and can cause adverse reactions like nausea and sores. ¡± Mr. Tank jumped in, ¡°It¡¯s okay, doctor. Just give Mr. York the best cure. ¡± Zachary immediately gave Mr. Tank a dirty look. Mr. Tank was dumbstruck by the re. Did he say something wrong? Mr. York did not want to stay in the hospital, and the shot could be his answer out of the ce. The doctor uttered, ¡°Since you requested a shot, I¡¯ll arrange to rece the pills with one. ¡± Zachary wanted to scowl but was afraid his wife might catch his expression. All he could do was curse Mr. Tank in his mind. The Novel will be updated daily. Come back and continue reading tomorrow, everyone! Chapter 677 Chapter 677 Chapter 677 After the doctor made his rounds, the nurse came by to put Zachary on IV drips. Serenity stared at Zachary while Mr. Tank went to check with the doctor on the type of shot to be administered to Zachary. Zachary looked at the bag of IV fluid, pondering on ways to escape the injection. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Zachary?¡± With Zachary staring nkly at the IV fluid without blinking, Serenity asked with concern, ¡°Are you feeling unwell?¡± ¡°Seren. ¡± Holding onto her hands, Zachary uttered pitifully, ¡°Can I get the pills instead? I don¡¯t like jabs. They hurt. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s all for your own good. Besides, you talked about the side effects of medicine, so taking the shot should do the trick. ¡± Serenity withdrew her arm and amusedly pinched his cheek. ¡°So there is something you¡¯re afraid of. ¡± Zachary grabbed her hands once more and looked deeply and affectionately into her eyes. ¡°The thing I¡¯m most afraid of is you leaving me. ¡± ¡°Alright now. Quit the act. Your attempt to be affectionate and pitiful won¡¯t work on me.N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. We suggested to the doctor that you take the jab, so you¡¯re taking it. ¡± Zachary was lost for words. He wanted to pass out once more. Would it work? Josh was considerate in sending his wife here so that she could care for him while he was sick. However, Serenity was also calling the shots for him. Pun intended. If Josh was here, he would say that Zachary should relish in his wife being the boss of him as Josh was single and would rather have a wife all over him. Zachary had no words. It appeared Zachary had unted his rtionship too much that karma had pped back. ¡°Do you fancy an apple?¡± Serenity asked. Zachary was not that fond of apples, but since Serenity had taken an apple from the fruit basket, he did not decline and said, ¡°I don¡¯t want too much. Just give me a tiny piece. ¡± Serenity washed the apple and sliced it into four pieces before giving Zachary one. Taking the apple slice, Zachary uttered, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you peel the skin off?¡± ¡°I always eat it with the skin like when I eat shrimp. I¡¯ll eat the shrimp with the shell if you don¡¯t peel it for me. ¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Get me discharged and I¡¯ll take you to enjoy the seafood here. The city is near the coast, so the seafood is abundant and cheap here. You can eat to your heart¡¯s content. ¡± ¡®We¡¯ll talk when you get better. ¡± ¡°Seren, my temperature hasn¡¯t gone down, but I feel better than yesterday. Let¡¯s get out of here after I¡¯m done with the IV drips, okay?¡± Munching on the apple, Serenity looked at him without saying a word. Try as Zachary might to cajole her, Serenity refused to budge. By then, Mr. Tank had returned with the nurse and some takeaway lunch. Serenity fed Zachary lunch and waited another half an hour before asking the nurse to administer the shot. Mr. Tank did not stay for long. After delivering lunch, he gave an excuse and slipped out of there. He had a feeling that the stink eye he got from Mr. York grew eerie when thetter saw him with the nurse. If looks could kill, Mr. Tank would be dead right now. It was not as though he was the one who suggested to the doctor to switch the medicine for a shot-it was the missus. Serenity had her lunch and said, ¡°Take the first dose now. You can have the second dose after dinner. ¡± ¡°Seren, can I just have one shot?¡± ¡°No. ¡± ¡°It hurts. I don¡¯t want it anymore. ¡± ¡®What can I do to make you feel better?¡± Zachary pouted. ¡°I won¡¯t feel better unless I don¡¯t get the jab. ¡± Serenity removed the mask and said, ¡°I can make your time worthwhile and give you something else to think about. ¡± She then leaned in, but Zachary was one step ahead and stopped her. ck in the face, he swiftly put the mask back on her face and uttered in a raspy voice, ¡°Although I would really love that, I might give you my cold. ¡± Chapter 678 Chapter 678 Chapter 678 Serenity uttered with joy in her eyes. ¡°Hang in there then. You¡¯re thirty years old, Zachary. How can a thirty-year-old manly man be afraid of a shot?¡± It turned out Zachary was afraid of needles. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary had better prayed not to be sick if he ever crossed her again. She would get the doctor to administer shots to him for any illness he had. With Zachary tensing his facial muscles without a word, Serenity leaned into his ear and whispered, ¡°Be a good boy and take the shot, Zachary. Then, I can go all the way with you and go back. Call it a reward since I rushed over to take care of you. ¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes were sparkling. He asked, ¡°Can I?¡± Sitting straight, Serenity smiled through her eyes. ¡°Once you get discharged from the hospital. ¡°How about it? Are you going to take the shot?¡± Looking rather conflicted, Zachary rolled up his sleeve and put his hand out in the end. He closed his eyes and took the shot like a champ. While the injection was being administered, Zachary convinced himself in his mind, ¡®It¡¯s an ant¡¯s bite. It¡¯s an ant¡¯s bite. ¡¯ His wife would reward him handsomely once he recovered from the cold. A certain somebody readily admitted that he had been ogling at his wife for a while now. It was most intense when he got her dressed once. He had been troubled by wet dreams at night. Serenity was tempted tough as Zachary tried to keep a nk face throughout. ¡°You can have the first shot now. The second shot can be administeredter,¡± Serenity said. However, Zachary told the nurse, ¡°I¡¯ll take the pain in one go. ¡± It was bad enough to suffer once, but the second time¡­ He might as well tough it out all at once. Zachary then put on a brave face for the second shot. Serenity was speechless. Well, at least Zachary got his daily doses. Serenity watched as the nurse applied pressure to the injection site. He stared at Serenity with a straight face. Serenity added, ¡°The nurse will put a bandage on your boo-boo. ¡± She plucked some grapes and plopped them into his mouth. ¡°Have some grapes and take your mind off the pain. ¡± Serenity then went to the loo. Once she was gone, Zachary held his arm and screamed silently. Serenity might just ask for more injections if he made a big deal out of it. Zachary stuffed his mouth with grapes and hid his pain. He vowed to himself to take care of his health, so he would never get sick again. Zachary would rather die than take another shot. Nevertheless, Zachary thought the shot was worth it at the thought that he and Serenity would be a real couple once he got better from his flu. Shhh¡­ He must not let anyone hear his thoughts, or he would get punished with more shots. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. He grabbed his phone and realized that it was Nana. ¡°Nana. ¡¯ ¡°I heard you¡¯re in the hospital. ¡± Grandma May added, ¡°I hope you¡¯re okay. ¡± ¡°Just a cold, fever, cough, and sore throat. Nothing serious. I¡¯ll be as good as new in a few days. ¡± With her mind at ease, Grandma May told him off, ¡°Don¡¯t overwork yourself. See, your body is susceptible to sickness when your immune system weakens. Since Seren is there, you and your wife can take time off work and spend some time together. Ultimately, you two get into fights easily because your rtionship is not strong enough. ¡± Their love for one another was not quite there yet. Chapter 679 Chapter 679 Chapter 679 Zachary had developed feelings for Serenity first and fell head over heels for her while Serenity had only made a tiny step forward. She could shrink back into her shell at any time. He fell silent. Zachary and Serenity often got into fights not just because their rtionship was not strong enough. His personality and habits were parts of the reason too. It was unlikely that Serenity would change for him. She was not the type to rely on menpletely. Serenity would not even let him in the loops of things that she could handle by herself. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Hence, he had to change for her instead. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you saying anything? You always keep to yourself when I teach you how to chase your wife and build a rtionship with her. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know what to say,¡± Zachary replied honestly. Grandma May responded, ¡®Why do I have such a senseless grandson like you? If your brothers and cousins are like you, I¡¯d rather reunite with your grandpa than worry about all of you. ¡± Her sons and daughters-inw were also worried, but it was the case of in one ear and out the other with these boys when their parents talked to them. Grandma May had no choice but to meddle in her grandsons¡¯ affairs despite her old age. She must have been a matchmaker in her past life but the unsessful kind as she had a hard time with her grandsons¡¯ marriages. ¡°Nana, I will handle my affairs. Just wait for your great-granddaughter to be born. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be long gone before that happens. ¡± ¡°The great-granddaughter will bring you back to life. ¡± Grandma May was speechless. ¡°I guess you must be feeling better since you can make me angry. I¡¯m hanging up. ¡± Grandma May had to end the call before the brat gave her a heart attack and sent her to heaven to meet her husband. She threw the phone onto the coffee table. The phone slid across the table and fell onto the ground. Callum swiftly caught the phone from falling. ¡°Where¡¯s your new phone, Nana?¡± ¡°It smashed and broke. You each bought me a phone. I have at least a dozen, so it can break for all I care. ¡± Callum answered, ¡°Nana, did Zack make you angry again?¡± Grandma May red at him. ¡°You boys will be the death of me. Look at you. You¡¯re no better than Zack. You don¡¯t even have a girlfriend. Why aren¡¯t you out during the holidays? Why are you sitting around? Is a wife going to fall from the sky if you just sit here?¡± Callum quickly put the phone in front of Grandma May and said, ¡®Til head out right now and sit in the yard, Nana. I¡¯ll wait for God to drop me a girlfriend from the sky. ¡± He had better slip away before his nana beat him up. Callum walked away, only toe back as he had forgotten his phone. The afternoon went by in a blink of an eye. Nighttime arrived earlier in the winter. By six o¡¯clock, the sky gradually turned dark. It was brightly lit at the Stones¡¯ residence. Since it was a rare asion for the Stones to organize an event, all guests arrived despite thest- minute invitation. The exception was the Yorks, who did not quite get along with the Stones. Oh, in fact, the Stones did not send the Yorks an invitation. It was mainly in consideration of Elisa. Elisa had finally decided to let go of her feelings for Zachary. The presence of the Yorks might rekindle her feelings for Zachary and her harassment toward him. Hence, Mrs. Stone-no matter how happy she was-decided against inviting Old Mrs. York to the event. Standing by Mrs. Stone were her daughter, Elisa, and her niece, Liberty. Liberty was holding Sonny¡¯s hand. Chapter 680 Chapter 680 Chapter 680 As Liberty was spilling on the sides, she did not wear a gown. It was mainly because there were no suitable evening dresses for her. It was toote to tailor one to her size. Nevertheless, she put on some new clothes and painted her face naturally. She also wore a jewelry set gifted by Mrs. Stone that brought out a sense of privilege in her. Sonny wore a mini suit. The little man was handsome, to begin with, and the suit only gave prominence to his attractive looks. Any woman who had seen Sonny could not resist holding him. The little guy was timid at first, but he soon got used to it and became bolder. He would sweetly thank anyone whoplimented his looks. In fact, he became the star of the event. ¡°Ma¡¯am, Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Duncan are here. ¡± With a maid approaching Mrs. Stone and informing the arrival of the distinguished guests, Mrs. Stone led her daughter and niece out to wee them. Mrs. Stone held Liberty¡¯s hand and said with a smile, ¡°Come with me to wee Mrs. Lewis, Liberty. ¡°Mrs. Lewis is Duncan¡¯s mom. Duncan once helped you. ¡± Mrs. Stone briefly talked about Mrs. Lewis. Liberty nodded her head with a grin. Aunt Audrey hosted the event with the intention of introducing Liberty and Serenity to everyone and letting Wiltspoonians know that the Stone Group had the sisters¡¯ backs. Mrs. Stone led her daughter and niece out. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. They ran into Mrs. Lewis and her son in the middle of thewn. ¡°Mrs. Lewis. Mr. Duncan. ¡± ¡°Mrs. Stone. ¡± Grinning from ear to ear, Mrs. Stone weed Mrs. Lewis like they were good friends. Mrs. Lewis responded with the same enthusiasm. Truth be told, they rarely greeted one another when they met. It was because the Lewises were close to the Yorks. Mrs. Lewis only came to the Stones¡¯ party tonight as her youngest son wasing with her. Pigs would fly before Duncan would attend any social event. Curious, Mrs. Lewis attended the Stones¡¯ party. She wanted to know the reason her youngest son was willing to attend the event with her. Duncan would rather die than go to an event with his mother. After the twodies of equal social standing exchanged greetings, they started to praise each other¡¯s offspring. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s attention fell on Liberty after showering Mrs. Stone¡¯s three children withpliments. ¡°Mrs. Stone, this must be your niece. ¡± Holding Liberty¡¯s hand, Mrs. Stone replied with a smile, ¡°This is my elder niece, Liberty. Her younger sister had an emergency and couldn¡¯t make it tonight. ¡± ¡°Sonny. ¡± As Mrs. Stone introduced Liberty to Mrs. Lewis, Duncan bent down and reached out to touch Sonny¡¯s face. The little guy in a suit was the most adorable thing. Sonny shied away to stand behind Liberty. For some reason, Sonny was afraid of Duncan. Once again, Duncan awkwardly withdrew his arMs. Straightening his back, he embarrassedly smiled at Mrs. Stone and uttered, ¡°Sonny is always scared of me. ¡± Mrs. Lewis picked up on something and asked, ¡°Duncan, do you know Ms. Hunt?¡± The way Duncan called someone else¡¯s son was rather affectionate. Duncan came clean. ¡°Liberty used to work in mypany. She handed in her resignation not too long ago. ¡± Sonny grabbed onto his mother¡¯s clothes before poking his head out to stare at Duncan. Letting out a smile, Duncan pped his hands and put his hands out to Sonny to gesture for Sonny to come close and give him a hug. He had been itching to hold this cute little man. Chapter 681 Chapter 681 Chapter 681 Sonny recoiled behind his mother. Turning around, Liberty picked her son up and said, ¡°Sonny, this is Mr. Lewis. You met him before. ¡± Sonny simply stared at Duncan. As polite as he usually was, Sonny refused to say hello to Duncan. ¡°The child is beautiful,¡± Mrs. Lewisplimented. Mrs. Stone¡¯s elder niece was broad around the beam, but her son was rather handsome. ¡°Duncan, your scary face scared the little guy. He won¡¯t let you touch him. ¡± Mrs. Lewis tore one into her youngest son. Since the incident when Duncan got a cut on his face, Mrs. Lewis was all for her son to go under the knife to remove the scar and get his good looks back. However, the headstrong b*stard refused to take her advice and do the surgery. He had no consideration for his mother who nearly had a heart attack and cried so many nights over the ident. Many years had passed, and the scar remained. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. The once hunk now found himself single at thirty¨Cfive¡­ Hang on. Duncan was about to celebrate his thirty¨Csixth birthday. The sons of other families were fathers of two or three kids at the age of thirty¨Cfive. Yet, there were no takers for her thirty¨Csix¨Cyear¨Cold son. As Mrs. Lewis did not often find Duncan taking to a child, she seized the chance to have a go at him. With a smile, Duncan replied, ¡°That¡¯s just because I¡¯m not familiar with Sonny. He won¡¯t be scared of me when we see each other more. ¡± Mrs. Lewis frowned. ¡°See each other more?¡± ¡°Liberty rented one of my shops to turn into a breakfast ce. I pass by that area on my way to work, so Sonny will see me every day,¡± Duncan exined. ¡°Please excuse me, Mrs. Stone, while I say hello to your son. ¡± Clive and his wife were receiving guests on the other end, so they were not with their mother. Mrs. Stone gave a nod smilingly as Duncan made his way to Clive. Mrs. Lewis took a few nces at Liberty but without any good intention. Without saying anything more to Liberty, Mrs. Lewis chatted with Mrs. Stone as they sauntered into the house. Elisa waited until the twodies were far before pulling Liberty aside and uttering,¡± Let¡¯s kill time here and go into the houseter so my mom has enough time to share about the pains of raising children with her friends. ¡± Curling her lips, Liberty understandingly answered, ¡°Sure. ¡± ¡°I don¡¯t like the way Mrs. Lewis was looking at you, Liberty. Don¡¯t take to heart how they look at you. With my mom around, they won¡¯t dare try anything. ¡± Elisa could discern Mrs. Lewis¡¯s disapproval of her cousin. The moment Mrs. Lewis found out that Liberty had a shop off Duncan to start a restaurant, Elisa caught the wariness in Mrs. Lewis toward Liberty. It was like Mrs. Lewis was on guard against her cousin for eyeing Duncan. ¡°Elisa, I¡¯m used to getting that kind of look. ¡± It did not bother Liberty at all. Although Liberty was one of the stars of the event tonight, it was only for one night to get to know the upper crust of Wiltspoon. She would leave the Stones¡® residence by daylight and return to her rented apartment. Liberty would be getting materials to renovate her shop for a fresh look after the New Year¡¯s holidays. She was going to be upied with all the purchase of necessities. The higher society was not for Liberty. There was no need to force herself into a circle where she did not belong. Liberty was aware of that. Aunt Audrey had money, but her wealth had nothing to do with Liberty. Liberty wanted to depend on herself to generate wealth and live better days. ¡°The thing is, Mrs. Lewis actually thinks you would go after her son. ¡± Outspoken as she was, Elisa blurted out what went on in Mrs. Lewis¡¯s mind. Liberty found Elisa¡¯s anger amusing. ¡°I¡¯m not even angry, Elisa. I could see that too. The people at Lewis & Co. also believed I was trying to get in Duncan¡¯s pants, but who cares what they think? I just came out of hell, and I¡¯m not going to jump back into marriage again. ¡°Hank¡¯s mother is on a pension of three thousand bucks a month, and she¡¯s not someone who is easy to please. She kept finding fault with me. It would be tougher to get along with Mrs. Lewis since she lives in privilege. I would be nuts to pine for her son. ¡± The failed marriage gave Liberty an insight and a new lease of life. She would think twice before stepping into another marriage. Chapter 682 Chapter 682 Chapter 682 ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t give Mrs. Lewis a chance to make things difficult for me. Don¡¯t be mad. ¡± ¡°You¡¯re so forgiving, Liberty. I would never allow anyone to look at me that way if it were me. I¡¯d make her pay. ¡± Liberty smiled. How could shepare herself to Elisa? Elisa was an heiress born with a silver spoon. Liberty was an orphan who lost both parents at a young age. ¡°I got your back from now on. You must let me know if anyone gives you an attitude or bullies you. I¡¯ll kick their *sses for you. ¡± ¡°Jasmine¡¯s here. ¡± With Jasmine and her brother arriving at the scene, Liberty alerted Elisa and distracted her from the topic. Jasmine dragged her brother along to the event so she could get a free ride off him and feast to her heart¡¯s content at the party. It was a pity that Serenity was not in Wiltspoon. ¡°Jasmine. ¡± Elisa and Liberty walked up to them. ¡°Why did you take ages, Jasmine?¡± As Elisa drew close and intimately held Jasmine¡¯s arm, many looked over and recognized Jasmine. Some were even whispering among themselves. ¡°Isn¡¯t she Mrs. Lowe¡¯s niece? It¡¯s been a while since I¡¯ve seen her. ¡± ¡°I bet Mrs. Stone doesn¡¯t know what Ms. Sox did when she got drunk. Mrs. Stone will be in for a surprise for inviting Ms. Sox when she ends up on the ground likest tirne. ¡± ¡°I heard Ms. Sox is good friends with Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece. It exins why Ms. Sox got the invitation. ¡± ¡°We should stay away from her. This person is a joke. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡± Oblivious that she had be the center of gossip, Jasmine asked Elisa, ¡°Was Ite? I read the time on the invitation. I believe I¡¯ve arrived early. ¡± She then greeted Liberty and carried Sonny beforeplimenting Liberty with a smile, ¡°Your outfit today really shows off your curves, Liberty. ¡± ¡°You can call me fat. I don¡¯t mind it at all. ¡± Liberty could face criticism from others for her own ws. She did not control her eating, so why stop others from calling her fat? She had been putting in the work to cut down her size. ¡°I speak from the heart, Liberty. You¡¯re of ample proportions. You have the makings of the richest woman in Wiltspoon. ¡± Following Jasmine¡¯s praises, Liberty replied smiling, ¡°So you¡¯re saying I have the potential to be a wealthy woman. ¡± ¡°Let¡¯s not forget that Mr. Charles foretold that things will be difficult for Liberty and Seren before they can enjoy the easy life. ¡± With Sonny in Jasmine¡¯s arms, she and her brother followed Elisa into the main house of the Stones¡® residence. Drake had the pleasure of meeting thesedies before. It was impolite of him to butt in while the girls were chatting. Hence, he quietly became a wallflower, secretly hoping Mr. Bucham would arrive soon. At least, he would havepany. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Liberty¡¯s phone rang. Stopping in her tracks, she pulled out her phone and looked at the disy screen. By the looks of the number, the call came from andline. ¡°Who¡¯s calling you? Is it someone from your ex¨Chusband¡¯s family?¡± Elisa asked with concern upon seeing Liberty¡¯s reluctance in answering the call. ¡°I don¡¯t know who¡¯s the caller. It¡¯s andline. ¡± After much hesitation, Liberty picked up the call in the end. ¡°It¡¯s me, Liberty. ¡± Liberty uttered, ¡°Mike? ¡°What do you want?¡± Liberty¡¯s voice turned t. apter 682 Mike let out an awkwardugh on the other end of the line. ¡°I heard you got a million bucks from your husband when you divorced him. ¡± Chapter 683 Chapter 683 Chapter 683 It alerted Liberty¡¯s internal rm bells to ring. She callously asked, ¡°Who told you that I got that much money? I didn¡¯t work or have. any ie after I got married. ¡± ¡°Your mother¨Cinw said so. Liberty, my business has hit a rough patch and is in the red. I lost all the money I profited from over the years. I don¡¯t have cash going into. the business, so I was thinking if you could lend me a million bucks. ¡± Liberty sneered in anger. There were no boundaries when it came to these people. They would not stop bugging her and Serenity. ¡°You might want to look in the mirror and see if you can find your dignity, Mike. After all that you¡¯ve done to me and my sister, you have the gall to ask me for money?! That¡¯s right. I do have a million dors, but I won¡¯t lend it to you. I¡¯d rather give the money to anyone else than you!¡± ¡°Oh,e on, Liberty. We¡¯re family after all. Look, you girls were stubborn then. You didn¡¯t get your husband to pay us for family support. He married you without forking out a dime to us. Look where itnded you. You should ask your future husband to pay for our grandparents¡® care, so he would feel responsible to the family and would not ditch you unnecessarily. ¡°Your future husband will only treasure you if hemits a sum of money to marry you. You don¡¯t have use for the money you have now anyway. Why don¡¯t you lend me the million dors? I¡¯ll pay you back when my business recovers. Besides, you and your sister are the reason my business is failing. ¡°My business wouldn¡¯t have suffered if you didn¡¯t ruin me with your post on Twitter. I¡¯m taking in a loss every day. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m not going to lend you the money! Not even a dime!¡± ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Liberty hung up on the call. With the phone mmed in his face, Mike cussed his heart out. ¡°What did she say?¡± His father inquired concernedly, ¡°Is Liberty going to lend you the money?¡± ¡°Dad, you know she won¡¯t do that. We¡¯re not even on the best of terms. Even a good friend won¡¯t lend me a million bucks. Restless, Mike paced around the living room. They were now back in their hometown, and everything cost them money. It was fine when Mike¡¯s business was doing well before, and he was bringing in clean profit every day. However, Mike was put out of business and about to lose his capital. He started to count pennies. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Old Mrs. Hunt would be discharged from the hospital and return home in two days. With the New Year around the corner, the olddy wanted to be home for the celebration. The Hunts, apart from Old Mr. Hunt who had been caring for his wife in the hospital, were now living in their hometown and taking turns going into the city to take care of Old Mrs. Hunt. Oh, right. John was still in the city, looking for a job. However, manypanies were on early Christmas and New Year leave, so it had not been smooth sailing for John. Stone Group came down heavily on John. Anypanies interested in hiring John for his capability would receive a call from Stone Group thereafter. As thepanies did not want to step on Stone Group¡¯s toes, they would change their mind about hiring John. John even attended interviews withpanies that were at odds with Stone Group, but the oue was the same. He spent some money to ask the manager of the human resources department at thesepanies why they would not take him in. Thepanies replied, saying that John had crossed someone, and anypanies that hired him would be made the enemy. John asked the human resource managers if the person was from Stone Group. The response he got was, ¡°Did you p*ss Stone Group off too? Don¡¯t youe from a farming town? Does your family own a farm? I¡¯d advise you to go pursue a career in that. At least, you can earn a livelihood. It¡¯s unlikely you will find a job here. ¡° Chapter 684 Chapter 684 Chapter 684 Despite John¡¯s persistent questioning, the human resource managers would not reveal to him who else, apart from Stone Group, was putting an end to his professional career. John knew that someone had Serenity and her sister¡¯s back. He thought it was Elisa at first, but now it seemed there was someone more powerful than Elisa standing behind the sister. Who could it be? The person had the power to stop anybody from hiring him in Wiltspoon. Having lost his confidence, John decided to wait until Grandmom was out of the hospital and send his grandparents back to their hometown before figuring something out in the new year. ¡°What do we do now?¡± Stuart was anxious. ¡°Whoever¡¯s behind Serenity and her sister must be some sort of big shot. They¡¯re the reason for our job losses and business failures. You¡¯re feeling the pinch too even though you don¡¯t run a huge business. ¡°Mike, we can have a family meeting when your grandmom is out of the hospital. We should apologize sincerely as Serenity had asked and see if things will change for the better.¡± Serenity mentioned that they should apologize for framing the sisters, tarnishing their names, roasting them, and putting them in the face of cyberbullying. Mike was hesitant. ¡°It¡¯s bad enough as it is. What¡¯s so difficult about issuing a public apology online? We can offer gifts to Liberty and her sister after the public apology. We must clean up our act and apologize this time. Things might be better when the sisters put the matter behind them.¡± Mike uttered resentfully, ¡°It was too much of Serenity and Liberty. Sure, we started it, but it was only a Twitter post. So, we hired people to troll them, but they fought back too. It¡¯s been hard on us thest two months. We suffered quite a huge loss. ¡°We¡¯re even now, but the girls won¡¯t back down. Must they push us this far?¡± Mike was not ready to forgive and forget. He added, ¡°They can¡¯t let go of their resentment toward us and still hold the incident against us, Dad. It¡¯s likely we won¡¯t ever reconcile with the sisters. I can bet my money that they will try and take back their parent¡¯s property.¡± ¡°That is our family¡¯s home base. They¡¯re married, so they shouldn¡¯t have a share of the property. The girls don¡¯t have the right to do so!¡± ¡°Dad, all children have the right to inherit the property. It¡¯s just a custom in our town to leave the inheritance to sons.¡± ¡°What should we do now? We clearly don¡¯t have the upper hand.¡± Stuart said with utmost regret, ¡°We shouldn¡¯t have done that. Your grandmom could¡¯ve used her savings to pay the hospital bill. It was enough to cover the bill if each of us contributed a little. ¡°But none of you was willing to fork out the money. We tried to make the girls pay instead. Do you remember what Liberty did when we asked for family support during her wedding? We should¡¯ve known the sisters are no pushovers. They were only youngdies back then.¡± Mike sort of regretted it too, but there was no point crying over spilled milk. What was done was done. The Hunts could only continue what they started. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡¯m going to go around to see if I can find out who has the sisters¡® back.¡± Mike even pondered killing the girls. He could look for someone to finish them off. Nevertheless, since Serenity got Noah locked up in jail after the stunt he pulled, Mike had to quit on that thought. They should apologize and go from there. Mike would resort to more desperate means if nothing changed after the apology was made. Even if he had to go down, he was taking Liberty and Serenity down with him. Chapter 685 Chapter 685 Chapter 685 Elisa was there to hear the entire conversation between Liberty and Mike. She angrily uttered, ¡°I can¡¯t believe they¡¯re still hounding you for money.¡± ¡°He wants to borrow money from me, saying that business is bad now, and he¡¯s in the red. He needs to pump in a million bucks into operations.¡± ¡°How shameless of him! And I thought I was the most brazen person in Wiltspoon. People called me shameless for going after Mr. York, butpared to your rtives, I¡¯m considered modest.¡± Liberty ended up soothing Elisa instead. ¡°Don¡¯t get worked up over these people, Elisa. Serenity and I will never be on good terms with them. Those people can go to N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. hell for all I care.¡± The hardship the Hunts faced right now was karma hitting back at them. ¡°Come on, let¡¯s enjoy the buffet and alcohol. Elisa, your pastry chef makes the best desserts. I¡¯m going to eat to my heart¡¯s content today!¡± Jasmine turned the subject of conversation elsewhere. Elisaughed at her. ¡°Desserts are fattening¡­ Liberty, I wasn¡¯t not talking about you.¡± Unbothered, Liberty replied, ¡°Desserts are fattening, but I cut out sweets in my diet.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care if desserts have high calories. I run and train every day, so a bit of dessert won¡¯t kill my weight.¡± Pulling Elisa along, Jasmine called Liberty and her son to go inside the house. Since Liberty gave up on sugar, she had to hold out against anything tasty at the party. Keeping to her diet was the first step to losing weight. By the time Josh arrived, Jasmine had had her fill and was drunk. Drake came along as the designated driver for his sister. While helping his drunk sister out, they ran into Josh who was surrounded by a crowd. Josh camete on purpose so that all eyes would be on him. It never crossed his mind that Jasmine was on her way out when he had just arrived. ¡°Mr. Bucham.¡± Drake nodded at Josh. ¡°What¡¯s going on Ms. Sox?¡± ¡°My sister is drunk.¡± Josh was speechless. It seemed she could not hold her liquor. ¡°Mr. Bucham, I¡¯m off to drive my sister home.¡± Holding his sister up by the arm, Drake gave Josh another nod and brushed past him. Jasmine was not the only person under the influence of alcohol. Even Elisa, who enjoyed more than the asional drink or two, was smashed. It was because the pair had somehow chatted about Mr. York, and Elisa called the maid to switch their wine to hard liquor. Jasmine and Elisa took turns downing the drink until they were wasted. Josh wanted to walk toward Jasmine as the public watched on, so everyone would know he had a thing for Jasmine. Guess the n went up in smoke. Even the bestid n would go astray and this seemed to be the case for Josh. Josh only showed up at the Stones¡® party because of Jasmine. Now that Jasmine was gone, he did not have a reason to stick around. The Stones¡® party was the buzz and only ended at midnight. The following day, Liberty was firm on returning to her little home together with her son, despite Mrs. Stone¡¯s insistence for her to stay. Before leaving the Stones¡® residence, Liberty had a long talk with Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Stone wanted to give two houses to Liberty and Serenity, but after consulting with her sister, Liberty turned down Mrs. Stone¡¯s generous offer. Mrs. Stone also wanted to give each of her nieces a lump sum of money to enrich the sisters¡® material lives. Liberty refused the kind gesture as well. Chapter 686 Chapter 686 Chapter 686 Liberty said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°Aunt Audrey, Seren and I are young and able. We don¡¯t need your help. Don¡¯t worry too much about us. Have faith in us. We will get to the top with our own effort. ¡°I do have one thing to ask of you. Try not to let everybody know that Seren and ? are your nieces. We have seen all kinds of people and the ugly side of humanity. I¡¯m worried that others might use us against you or the Stone Group.¡± After much thought, Mrs. Stone replied, ¡°I¡¯m happy that you think that way, Liberty. You are both strong¨Cwilled like me. I¡¯ll take a step back since you don¡¯t need my help, but you must let me know if things get tough for you. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter if others don¡¯t know about our rtionship, but your rtives must know of that fact, or they¡¯ll continue to pester you girls for money.¡± Stone Group¡¯s reputation came in handy at times. ¡°They already know Elisa stands behind us.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Elisa got into it with the Hunts at the shop. ¡°I won¡¯t go out of my way to tell them, but I might use your name to put pressure on them when we take them to court to repossess our parents¡® home. It should work in our favor.¡± ¡°Tell me when you decide to start the legal battle. I can help you hire the bestwyer. With the inheritancew, you should win the case.¡± Liberty knew that she and her sister would get the house back through court. However, the Hunts were despicable and would not easily back off. Even if the sisters won the legal battle, the Hunts would y dumb. The sisters would have to pull out the big guns and use Aunt Audrey¡¯s name. Following the long talk with Mrs. Stone, Mrs. Stone was true to her word and only watched her nieces in the dark. She did not interfere with her nieces¡® lives. It was only right to leave the girls to walk their paths. It took a week before Zachary got rid of his nasty cold. Since there was work to be done, Callum took over while Zachary was in the hospital. Callum returned to Wiltspoon a day before Zachary was due to be discharged. With New Year closing ini, most factories had put out the dates of the Christmas and New Year closure. York Corporation was rushing the year¨Cend deadlines. After consultation with Zachary, it was decided that the employees could go on leave during the festive. holidays. Zachary kept in mind what his wife said to him. He would get a treat once he got better in health. Once back at the apartment prepared by the subsidiarypany, Zachary got to packing. ¡°Why are you packing your stuff, Zachary?¡± Serenity asked in confusion. They had only returned from the hospital. ¡°Seren.¡± Turning on his heel, Zachary faced Serenity and pressed down on her shoulders as their eyes locked. He tenderly uttered, ¡°This is not our home. I don¡¯t want to spend our first night here.¡± Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes flickered. ¡°Oh, you remember what I said.¡± Zachary pulled her toward him while inching his attractive face toward hers to nuzzle. He breathed into her ear. ¡°I don¡¯t remember when you swore at me, but I won¡¯t forget that you talked about going all the way with me. To make that happen, I¡¯ve been braving myself to take the shots in the past week.¡± It nearly killed him! It was a shot a day. Zachary hadined to Mr. Tank behind Serenity¡¯s back about the big needles. The way he saw it, the doctor could have used a smaller needle. ¡°Did it hurt that bad?¡± Serenity felt for Zachary when he had to take the shots. It was hard on him. Zachary had to endure a shot every day. ¡°It hurt, but I¡¯m better now. How about you give me some sugar and make the pain go away?¡± Bearing a smile, Serenity wrapped her arms around the nape of Zachary¡¯s neck and drew her lips against his. Chapter 687 Chapter 687 Chapter 687 Even though Serenity had been hanging around Zachary every day, he could not kiss. his wife, the love of his life. Zachary had trouble keeping it in his pants. Now that the ban was lifted, he could not keep his hands off Serenity and demanded kisses. A whileter, Serenity rested against his chest and caught up on her breathing. ¡°Seren.¡± Serenity lifted her chin to meet him at eye level. With Zachary looking rather solemn, Serenity blinked her eyes. That was quite a quick change of mood. She asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Why do you have that teacher look? ¡°Do you still remember the first time you came to my shop to help? The students didn¡¯t even dare set foot into the shop because you were there.¡± Zachary put his hand on her face, caressing his thumb against her soft skin. There was a smile across his face. ¡°You rushed me to go back to the office. I was furious because you didn¡¯t appreciate that I was trying to help you. You even tried to hurry me along.¡± In the past, he was always stuck¨Cup, grumpy, and sour¨Cfaced in her presence. He acted as if everybody owed him. ¡°What are you trying to say to me, Zachary?¡± Serenity did not stop Zachary from brushing his finger against her face as she enjoyed the intimate caresses. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. It felt as though she was a gem to him. ¡°There¡¯s one thing I¡¯ve kept from you.¡± ¡°What¡¯s that?¡± Zachary fell silent before saying, ¡°You must promise that you won¡¯t get angry with me, Seren, and you can¡¯t go back on your word.¡± Serenity stared at him, and he did not shy away from her gaze. After looking into each other¡¯s eyes, Serenity nudged him away to create a distance between them. ¡°Zachary, are you trying to trick me? You want me to promise that I won¡¯t get angry and that I won¡¯t go back on my word before you tell me what¡¯s up. What if you¡¯re going to tell me something that will make me blow up? Am I supposed to suck it up and pretend everything is sunshine and roses? ¨C ¡°Let me put it out there I won¡¯t take one for the team. I¡¯ll pinch and bite you when I¡¯m mad!¡± Zachary reached out to hold her. However, she pped away his hand. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me. Tell me what you¡¯ve been hiding from me, and I¡¯ll decide whether it¡¯s enough reason not to abuse you.¡± Zachary uttered, ¡°Erm, I don¡¯t just have the property in Brynfield.¡± Folding her arms, Serenity asked, ¡°And?¡± ¡°I have a vi on the hilltop in Regent Residences. I have been living there until we tied the knot. I only brought the ready¨Cto¨Cmove¨Cin house in Brynfield at thest minute before we signed the papers.¡± Serenity red at him. Regent Residences? What was the price per square foot of the vis there? Serenity had been keeping an eye on property prices as she was doing the math to save for a down payment. She would not dream of living in a vi. Hence, Serenity did not pay much attention to the luxury areas. Pulling out her phone, Serenity checked online for the price per square foot in Regent Residences. It was then she realized Regent Residences was an exclusive area, and those living there were loaded. Chapter 688 Chapter 688 Chapter 688 To think Zachary owned a vi there and it was on the hilltop with the best view too Stuffing her phone back into her pocket, Serenity turned around and walked to the sofa for a seat. She did not break gaze with Zachary. Zachary was looking at her. He wondered if she was angry or pleasantly surprised. Serenity appeared surprised, but not the good kind. ¡°Seren, w¨Cwe rushed to get married, so I¡­¡± N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Zachary drew close and sat next to her. The moment he took a seat, Serenity scooted to the side, pulling a distance between them. She told him off, ¡°Stay right there. Don¡¯te too close to me.¡± Tensing her facial lines, Serenity uttered furiously, ¡°I know why you kept it from me. Do you think I¡¯ll go after your money when I find out you own a vi? ¡°How much do you make annually as a senior executive in York Corporation? I bet it¡¯s a few million dors. You¡¯re always busy at work, either working overtime or going to business parties. Do you im the spending and hours from thepany? You didn¡¯t have a girlfriend or a wife. You said that your family is doing well financially, so you don¡¯t need to hand out an allowance to your parents. ¡°You must have saved a lot of money to buy a vi that costs more than ten million. ¡°I know you¡¯ve been holding out on me since the day we got married. You think I¡¯m a conniving woman, out to get your money.¡± While speaking, Serenity picked up the cushion on the sofa and smacked Zachary with it. ¡°Zachary, for you to hide a vi from me, you weren¡¯t 100% honest with me. I can¡¯t believe you took it out on me the other night for keeping things from you and not treating you like family. ¡°That¡¯s some double standard you have there.¡± Zachary let her whack him with the cushion. It did not hurt anyway. He chose to tell Serenity about the vi, but he had more than one property. Zachary brought up one to see how Serenity would react when she found out that he had something to hide from her. She was mad. ¡°Yes, Seren. You¡¯re right. I have double standards. I know I¡¯m so full of myself. You¡¯re right to say that about me.¡± He extended his arms to pull Serenity, together with the cushion, into his embrace Zachary said apologetically, ¡°I know my wife isn¡¯t conniving, and she isn¡¯t out to get my money. Don¡¯t be mad, Seren. I feel bad when you¡¯re mad.¡± Giving his arm a good pinch, Serenity peevishly said, ¡°Why tell me now?¡± ¡°I usually stay there. I feel that the ce is my home.¡± Well, it was his personal space, a home that belonged to him. ¡°I think we should spend our first night there together.¡± Pursing her lips, Serenity pinched his arm once more. ¡°You¡¯re only telling me now because you found an excuse to make me less mad at you.¡± Despite the pinches, Zachary refused to let go. He trapped her with his arms. ¡°I really want us to be in our home. It means something to me. ¡°Please forgive me for keeping it from you, Seren.¡± Serenity tried to push him away, but his hold on her was secured. She gave up in the end. ¡°Is the vi paid for, or are you still paying the mortgage?¡± Zachary did the math in mind before uttering, ¡°I joined York Corporation fresh out of college and have been working for a few years. I started off with an annual ie of a few hundred thousand dors. It took me a few years before I earned my first million. Now, I bring home several million a year. ¡°Although I saved my wages, I wasn¡¯t in the position to pay the house in cash. I¡¯m on a mortgage, but I put down 80% for the down payment, so I didn¡¯t have trouble making the monthly repayments. I put aside some money after deducting the mortgage to afford another property before marrying you. ¡°That was why I told you that the apartment in Brynfield and the national MPV will go to you if we divorce. It was to make up for your lost time.¡± Serenity responded, ¡°No wonder you asked me to sign a contract when we first got married. You were so generous to give the house to me. Since you can afford a vi, why didn¡¯t you get a better car?¡° Chapter 689 Chapter 689 Chapter 689 After much silence, Zachary said, ¡°I don¡¯t have much savings left after purchasing the vi and the apartment in Brynfield. The car is only a mode of transport. I don¡¯t need a luxury car since the one I have now does the job. ¡± Zachary was flustered as he was making up more lies to cover up the web of lies* from before. Serenity gave him another push. ¡°Let go of me. ¡± ¡°Are you going to run?¡± ¡°Where can I run to? I won¡¯t tell you if I n to run away. I can just pack my stuff and leave. I would be bluffing and trying to scare you if I made a hugemotion to leave. I¡¯d be quiet if I wanted to leave for sure. It will be without hesitation, and you won¡¯t be able to find me. ¡± With his heart beating out of his chest, Zachary cautiously asked, ¡°Seren, in what circumstances would you leave me?¡± ¡°You must be guilty of doing me dirty to ask that question. ¡± Zachary was quick to deny, ¡°I just want to know, so that I won¡¯t make that mistake and hurt you. I don¡¯t want to give you a chance to leave me. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡± Serenity observed his facial features. Seeing that he was calm, Serenity held his face still and looked into his eyes for a long time. She did not catch any signs of guilt in his eyes. Zachary might be honest or good at hiding his emotions. Either way, she could not read him. ¡°I can¡¯t stand cheating, domestic violence, and endless lies. ¡± ¡°I won¡¯t cheat or raise my hand at you. ¡± Zachary immediately promised. Serenity ran her fingers across his face. ¡°I hope you¡¯ll keep your word. ¡°Only time will tell. ¡± With something to hide, Zachary ignored the statement about endless lies. Although it appeared he had only lied to her once, a single fabrication was covered up with countless lies. He had not been honest with her many times. His intention was to probe for Serenity¡¯s reaction. He woulde clean to her if she only needed a moment to get over her anger. Now that he knew where the fine line was, Zachary felt conflicted. He tricked his wife once, and now he was paying for it. Well, Zachary may not stick around to clean up the mess he created because she might dump him before that happened. ¡°Zachary. ¡± Zachary lowered his gaze to meet hers. ¡°Aren¡¯t we flying home?¡± With a flicker in his eyes, Zachary nodded. ¡°Why are you still hugging me? Let go, so I can pack our stuff to go home. ¡± Zachary smiled and dotingly nted a kiss on her forehead. He teased, ¡°Why do I feel my wife is more eager than I am?¡± ¡°You¡¯re imagining it. I¡¯ve been away from home for a week. I miss my sister, Sonny, my best friends, and Nana. I can¡¯t wait to get home. ¡± Serenity pulled out a wad of cash from her pocket. It was remuneration from Mr. Tank for looking after Zachary. ¡°Did you get your pay? Did you check if the amount is right? Make sure they don¡¯t go behind your back and dock your pay. ¡± While counting the money, Serenity uttered, ¡°I¡¯m homesick. ¡± She received money foring all the way to care for her man. ¡°I¡¯ll only get my wages just before the holidays start. Don¡¯t worry, they won¡¯t dock my pay. I was sent by the headquarters to go on a business trip, so it was paid sick leave. ¡± Seeing that Serenity had too much fun counting the cash, Zachary said, ¡°While counting the money, are you thinking that I should remain longer in the hospital, so you could¡¯ve gotten more for taking care of me?¡± ¡°Yeah. I mean, no. No way. I hope you¡¯re always healthy and away from pain and illness. ¡± Zachary lovingly dabbed her nose before letting her go. Chapter 690 Chapter 690 Chapter 690 ¡°Yeah, right. ¡± Zachary went on to pack his bags. Serenity sat down, carrying on with her money counting. York Corporation was the toppany in Wiltspoon for sure. The corporation had deep pockets that even the subsidiarypany was generous. Serenity earned a few thousand dors for the few days of caring for Zachary. Mr. Tank would have given Serenity more money, but she might suspect something. After counting the cash, Serenity got up and grabbed her go¨Cto purse. It was a cheap canvas purse that cost a few dors if bought in bulk online. Nevertheless, the purse was useful and could hold bills worth tens of thousands. Serenity stuffed the cash into the purse and watched Zachary pack the suitcase. There was not a lot of stuff. She packed his bags before Zachary went on his business trip. Since Serenity came in a hurry, she only brought along two changes of clothes. The daily necessities were bought here. It did not take long for Zachary to finish packing. He approached Serenity with the suitcase in tow and said, ¡°Mr. Tank arranged a private ne for us. I¡¯ve contacted the flight crew. Let¡¯s go. ¡± Serenity put her hand out to him, and Zachary dragged the suitcase with one hand and held her hand with the other as they moved along. ¡°Zachary, Mr. Bucham is a nice guy. How did you be good friends with him? I wonder if there¡¯s any chemistry going on with him and Jasmine. He¡¯s a brilliant man. It¡¯s a shame that he¡¯s single. ¡± Serenity sincerely hoped there would be some sort of spark between them. Zachary smiled. ¡°Mr. Bucham and I have worked together for a long time. We became good friends over time. I didn¡¯t intentionally try to gain anything through him. ¡°They¡¯ll be friends even if they don¡¯t feel attracted to each other. ¡± ¡°Yeah. ¡± Serenity stopped worrying about her best friend¡¯s love life. Everybody had a different approach toward love. She and Zachary set them up for a date, but the sess of a rtionshipy on Josh and Jasmine¡¯s shoulders. A few hourster, Serenity and Zachary made it back to Wiltspoon, and their first stop was York Corporation. Zachary told Serenity to wait for him at the VIP lounge on the first floor while he reported on work to his superior. They would go home thereafter. ¡°Go on. I¡¯ll wait for you here. ¡± Serenity took a seat on the sofa in the lounge, gesturing to Zachary to carry on with his work. It was still early in the day, so she was fine to wait. Zachary got someone to bring Serenity snacks. He whispered a few words with the two receptionists before hurrying upstairs. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡°Ms. Hunt, let us know if you need anything. We¡¯ll be outside. ¡± One of the receptionists poured Serenity a ss of water. Rising to her feet, Serenity took the ss from the receptionist and answered with a smile, ¡°Thank you. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mention it, Ms. Hunt. ¡± The receptionist gleefully responded, finding the CEO¡¯s wife rather friendly. Serenity¡¯s identity was no secret within York Corporation. Since Zachary had notpletely gone public about his marriage, everybody continued to address Serenity by her maiden name. ¡°I¡¯ll wait for Zachary here. Don¡¯t let me keep you. Don¡¯t mind me. ¡± The receptionist replied with a grin, ¡°I¡¯ll get back to work then. Just call me if you need anything, Ms. Hunt. ¡± Serenity nodded and expressed her thanks. Once the receptionist was gone, Serenity sent a text message to her sister. Since her sister was not responding, she texted her best friend instead. [I¡¯m back, Jasmine. I¡¯m waiting for my husband to give an update about his work progress at York Corporation. Thepany is giving me good vibes, and now I¡¯m tempted to apply for a job at thepany. I could use some experience in a professional setting. ¡± Chapter 691 Chapter 691 Chapter 691 Ever since the start of the school¡¯s winter holidays, Jasmine had been holing up at home. Her daily routine consisted of eating, sleeping, and reading romance novels on her phone. Her brother would get the asional phone call from Josh to dine out, and Jasmine. would invite herself to the get¨Ctogether in case her brother might sell her out behind her back. Now that Jasmine received a message from Serenity that thetter was back, Jasmine quickly replied with a voice message. ¡°How about Italian tonight? Mr. Bucham took my brother to an Italian ce, and the food was great. I¡¯ve been waiting for you toe back so we can try out the ce. You have no idea. I couldn¡¯t binge when dining with my brother and Mr. Bucham because I¡¯d eat more than them. ¡± Serenity responded to her with a smile, ¡°I can¡¯t tonight. I just got back with Mr. York. We¡¯re going to have a slow night. How about tomorrow night? Get my sister and Elisa to join us. ¡± ¡°We don¡¯t have to include Elisa since she eats like ady. She¡¯s not a foodie like you and I. We¡¯replete opposites when ites to food. Your sister is trying to lose weight and is on a strict diet right now. She goes running three times a day. She¡¯d probably end up watching us eat if we asked her toe along. I don¡¯t think we¡¯d be able to eat in peace. ¡°Seren, your sister¡¯s weight loss is starting to show. I guess you haven¡¯t seen your sister since you just got back. She lost ten pounds in a week. She¡¯s really pushing herself and sticking to her guns. I wouldn¡¯t be able to hold out and stay away from food if it were me. ¡± It would be tough for a foodie to follow through with a strict diet. ¡°Your sister lost twenty pounds since the talk about the divorce. She¡¯ll achieve her weight goal if she carries on a little longer. ¡± News that her sister dropped ten pounds in a week concerned Serenity. She asked, ¡± Is my sister not eating at all?¡± She was not in Wiltspoon to check on her sister¡¯s daily living. Her sister often said all was good when Serenity called. Serenity was told to focus on nursing Zachary back to health. Jasmine replied, ¡°Nah. Your sister has been working out a lot. I mean, she runs three times a day and cuts down on fats and sweets. Plus, she¡¯s busy with the renovation of her shop. No one wants to work during the holidays, so she took it upon herself to order the materials and get around. I¡¯d be surprised if she didn¡¯t lose any weight. ¡°She¡¯s taking her three meals. She doesn¡¯t finish her te, but enough for her calorie count. ¡± It put Serenity¡¯s mind at ease. ¡°I¡¯ll see you tomorrow night then. Let¡¯s go to the Italian ce you talked about. Just the two of us. ¡± Since Zachary just got better from the flu, Serenity did not intend to bring him along. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll wait for your call. ¡± The pair chatted for a while through voice messages until Zachary came down the stairs. Serenity said to her best friend, ¡°My husband is done checking in with work. We¡¯re going home now. ¡± ¡°Go on. I need to go get groceries with Mom at the market. She wants me toe along with her every time. She said all I do is hang around the house. She would nag at me every time I held my phone up to read romance stories. She has an audiobook on during dinner anyway. ¡± Serenity could imagine Mrs. Lowe badgering Jasmine. Jasmine would whine about it, but Serenity was jealous that Jasmine had a mother by her side. Serenity wished her mom would yell at her. s, her mom was no more. Zachary walked in to find a smile on his wife¡¯s face. There was also a sense of longingness in her expression. ¡°Seren. ¡± He approached her and tenderly called her name, drawing her back from her thoughts. Snapping out of her wandering mind, Serenity turned to him and asked, ¡°Are you done with work?¡± ¡°I¡¯m all good now. My business trip was for ten days, but I was in the hospital for seven days. Callum followed up after me, so I didn¡¯t have much to report on. ¡± He took Serenity¡¯s hand and led her out of there. ¡°Let¡¯s go home. ¡± Serenity walked with him. ¡°Brothers working in the samepanye in handy sometimes. ¡± Callum would take over his brother¡¯s work when Zachary was sick. At least, one¡¯s family would not grumble about doing another family member¡¯s job. Zachary smiled. He brought Serenity to the parking lot and drove the national MPV parked among luxury sedans. Chapter 692 Chapter 692 Chapter 692 Zachary would usually take his Rolls Royce, but the chauffeur drove the sedan back to the old residence and was on standby during his business trip. ¡°Yourpany¡¯s parking lot is like a car show. You can see an array of cars here. ¡± Serenitymented as she got into the car. She saw many luxury sedans. ¡°We have a lot of senior executives in the office. People tend to get better cars when their ies are high. No man can resist cars. Well, you know I prefer properties to cars. The value will only increase with time. ¡± Serenity would not take Zachary¡¯s word for it if she knew the cars in his garage could rival a car exhibition. ¡°Men love cars, and women love properties. You can make a home out of a house. ¡± Serenity had been saving up to buy a house. The car she had was a gift from Zachary. Her usual mode of transportation to work was her e¨Cbike. ¡°Have you texted your sister?¡± ¡°I sent her a text, but I haven¡¯t received a reply. She must be upied with something. Jasmine mentioned that my sister has been busy. She lost quite a bit of weight too. Ten pounds in a week. I think my sister could be in a weight loss ad. ¡± Liberty was a good example of determination to shed ten pounds in seven days. Serenity looked forward to the day her sister would reach her weight goal. She bet her sister¡¯s transformation would give Hank something to feel sorry about. ¡°Liberty is strong¨Cwilled. She¡¯ll lose weight since she puts her mind to it. ¡± ¡°Yeah,¡± Serenity answered. Serenity had never been to Regent Residences. The richmunity was not an area she ever kept her eye on. Since entering the residential area, Serenity had her eyes glued to the window as she looked at the view. Zachary¡¯s vi was on the hilltop. By hilltop, it was more like the top of a hillock. There were about five vis on the hilltop, the one that took up the most square footage was the biggest vi around there. ¡°Which is yours?¡± Serenity asked the man beside her. ¡°The most hidden one. It was slightly cheaper than the rest because of its remote. location. I enjoy the peace and quiet. I won¡¯t be bothered by neighbors if the property is further away. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡± Serenity believed every word he said. He did enjoy the peace and quiet. Several minutester, Zachary pulled up at the gate of the vi that was on the very end. Serenity watched as he stopped the car and was ready to remove the car keys to open the gate. The house keys were strung together with his car keys. ¡°Is there anyone at home?¡± ¡°No. I lived alone in the house before I married you. ¡± Serenity was speechless. She thought he would invite his parents and nana to live together in such a big house. It never urred to her that he would live by himself. It was likely that his parents did not want to stay with him. Serenity understood that many elders did not like living in a bustling city. They preferred to remain in the family home as it was theirfort space. They were surrounded by familiar neighbors whereas, in the city, people barely knew their neighbors. Chapter 693 Chapter 693 Chapter 693 After unlocking the gate, Zachary got back into the car and started the engine. He drove into the vipound and parked on the empty driveway. He replied without Serenity pressing for answers. ¡°My parents and Nana prefer living in the old residence and away from the bustle. They¡¯re used to the ce because they have been there for decades. They prefer their peace away from us kids. Nana would stay with us for a few days and disappear somewhere else. ¡± Serenity concurred, ¡°Yeah. Sounds like it. ¡± She got out of the car and strolled around the frontwn. Thendscape was great. The estate had a frontwn and backyard. There was a swimming pool, some pruned trees, and a perg in the front. The tree near the perg had a swing installed onto the branch. It was perfect to enjoy a good book or the view while sitting there. The backyard was lush with scenic and fruit trees. There were homegrown Wiltspoonian trees like apple and mango trees. Serenity observed the open space in the middle of the backyard, contemting growing fruits and vegetables on the vacant lot. She blurted out the idea she had in mind. Zachary said with a smile, ¡°I don¡¯t have time to garden. You¡¯re thedy of the house. You can grow whatever you want. I don¡¯t have a problem with how you use thend. ¡± Truth be told, the gardener cleared thend to grow roses. Since he wanted to let Serenity know about the vi, Zachary informed the butler to move everybody to the other vi during his time in the hospital while Serenity was not around. The gardener cleared thend for Serenity to have her dream garden. The swing by the perg was installed hastily at thest minute. Serenity would enjoy taking in the view from the swing. ¡°The ce is a little far from our workces. I¡¯ll forget about it for now. ¡± Serenity believed the apartment in Brynfield was more essible. They coulde over to stay at a vi every once in a while for short breaks. ¡°We have cars, so we can drive here after work. It¡¯s quieter than Brynfield. A lot of our neighbors are families with kids. We can hear the angry screams of moms upstairs and downstairs, tutoring their children on homework. ¡± Serenity responded with a grin, ¡°Don¡¯tin about the noise. You¡¯ll know how it feels when you have to help your child with homework. ¡± Zachary confidently uttered, ¡°I¡¯m a mellow man. I¡¯ll hold my ground even when I have to help my child with homework. I won¡¯t yell at them. What¡¯s the point of screaming? Will screaming help if they don¡¯t know how to do their homework?¡± Serenity gave him a skeptical look. ¡°You always get ahead of yourself but look where you end up. You¡¯re in charge of homework when we have a child at school age. I¡¯ll take care of the house chores, so you can unleash your mellow energy and hold your ground. ¡± Turning on her heel, she walked away. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Zachary caught up to her and put his arm around her shoulder before chuckling. ¡± Let¡¯s go into the house and make babies. Otherwise, you can¡¯t verify that I can hold my ground when helping our kid with homework. ¡± Before he could help their child with homework, they must first have a child. ¡°You haven¡¯t been living here for a while now. Is the kitchen usable?¡± ¡°It¡¯s been a while, but my mom will hire a few cleaners to tidy up the ce in two days and stock up the fridge, so I cane back and make my own meals. ¡± Serenity had no reason to suspect Zachary was lying. The way she saw it, many mothers would fuss over their children¡¯s daily lives. Hank was an example. Her sister took care of basic needs after marriage while his mother would check in on Hank every now and then as if Liberty would do a bad job. ¡°Let¡¯s have dinner and a stroll after that. ¡± Zachary remarked, ¡°But I want to eat you up now, Seren. ¡± Serenity pouted. ¡°What¡¯s the rush? Can¡¯t you take me around to get familiar with the ce?¡± Chapter 694 Chapter 694 Chapter 694 ¡°This is our home. We can spend the rest of our lives here, so there¡¯s no rush to look around. ¡± With his arms around Serenity, Zachary ushered her into the house, even picking her up in between to rush up the stairs. ¡°I¡¯ll prepare a sumptuous dinner for you downstairs once I get my fill. ¡± Serenity was at a loss for words. They entered the master bedroom on the second floor, but before Serenity could check out the room, the desperate man put her down on the bed. With his muscr body pinning her down, Serenity lifted her arms and nudged him. She said, ¡°You¡¯re heavy. ¡± Holding himself up with his elbows, Zachary lowered his gaze to meet hers. He did not hide the burning passion in his eyes as he inquired in a gruff voice, ¡°Can I, Seren? ¡°It¡¯s not toote for you to change your mind. I can just take another cold shower. ¡± Serenity caressed his face. ¡°You got your good looks from your parentsbined. To have a piece of meat hanging around me every day, I could¡¯ve turned into a she- wolf and devoured you. Don¡¯t take a cold shower. You just got out of the hospital. ¡± Zachary put his weight on her as he leaned in for a peck on her lips. He chuckled. ¡± Liar, liar, pants on fire. You were relieved to hear that we were sleeping in separate rooms. Don¡¯t think for a second I didn¡¯t see through you. You love to hit on me and run away before anything concrete happens. ¡± Now that they started to have feelings for each other, and he destroyed the signed agreement of both parties, Serenity was ready to take the bold step forward and have the marriage consummated. Otherwise, they would continue to be married by name. ¡°Go and take a shower. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary sealed her lips once more before turning over to get off the bed. He picked up a change of clothes and said to Serenity, ¡°I¡¯ll shower in the guest bathroom. You can stay here. ¡± Serenity remarked with a smile, ¡°Go on. ¡± Zachary could not help but make his way back to smooch her face a few times before happily going on his way. Serenity was lying in bed, waiting for him by the time he finished his shower in record time. Following his presence, a blush crept onto Serenity¡¯s cheeks as she tugged on the covers over her. Catching her nervous tic, Zachary took his time instead. He drew close to sit by the bed and asked thoughtfully, ¡°Do you want some alcohol?¡± She tended to let loose with alcohol in her system. ¡°Do you have any?¡± Serenity often yapped about going all the way with him, now when it came down to it, she had cold feet. Well, she was mostly shy. It was hard to shake her nerves away since she did not have experience. Alcohol was good to soothe the nerves. ¡°Yes, I do. I have a minibar in the bedroom. Wait here. I¡¯ll make you something. ¡± Zachary did not want to get her drunk. It was just a shot to sweep away her nerves and fear. Serenity nodded her head. As she was nervous, Serenityy in bed right after the shower without checking his room out. She had no idea he had a minibar in here. After much thought, Serenity grabbed her phone from the bedside table and googled something¡­ A large hand came and took away the phone in her hands. Zachary¡¯s husky voice was heard. ¡°Seren, I hope I can be the one to teach you. ¡± ¡°This is our home. We can spend the rest of our lives here, so there¡¯s no rush to look around. ¡± With his arms around Serenity, Zachary ushered her into the house, even picking her up in between to rush up the stairs. ¡°I¡¯ll prepare a sumptuous dinner for you downstairs once I get my fill. ¡± Serenity was at a loss for words. They entered the master bedroom on the second floor, but before Serenity could check out the room, the desperate man put her down on the bed. With his muscr body pinning her down, Serenity lifted her arms and nudged him. She said, ¡°You¡¯re heavy. ¡± Holding himself up with his elbows, Zachary lowered his gaze to meet hers. He did not hide the burning passion in his eyes as he inquired in a gruff voice, ¡°Can I, Seren? ¡°It¡¯s not toote for you to change your mind. I can just take another cold shower. ¡± Serenity caressed his face. ¡°You got your good looks from your parentsbined. To have a piece of meat hanging around me every day, I could¡¯ve turned into a she- wolf and devoured you. Don¡¯t take a cold shower. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. You just got out of the hospital. ¡± Zachary put his weight on her as he leaned in for a peck on her lips. He chuckled. ¡± Liar, liar, pants on fire. You were relieved to hear that we were sleeping in separate rooms. Don¡¯t think for a second I didn¡¯t see through you. You love to hit on me and run away before anything concrete happens. ¡± Now that they started to have feelings for each other, and he destroyed the signed agreement of both parties, Serenity was ready to take the bold step forward and have the marriage consummated. Otherwise, they would continue to be married by name. ¡°Go and take a shower. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Zachary sealed her lips once more before turning over to get off the bed. He picked up a change of clothes and said to Serenity, ¡°I¡¯ll shower in the guest bathroom. You can stay here. ¡± Serenity remarked with a smile, ¡°Go on. ¡± Zachary could not help but make his way back to smooch her face a few times before happily going on his way. Serenity was lying in bed, waiting for him by the time he finished his shower in record time. Following his presence, a blush crept onto Serenity¡¯s cheeks as she tugged on the covers over her. Catching her nervous tic, Zachary took his time instead. He drew close to sit by the bed and asked thoughtfully, ¡°Do you want some alcohol?¡± She tended to let loose with alcohol in her system. ¡°Do you have any?¡± Serenity often yapped about going all the way with him, now when it came down to it, she had cold feet. Well, she was mostly shy. It was hard to shake her nerves away since she did not have experience. Alcohol was good to soothe the nerves. ¡°Yes, I do. I have a minibar in the bedroom. Wait here. I¡¯ll make you something. ¡± Zachary did not want to get her drunk. It was just a shot to sweep away her nerves and fear. Serenity nodded her head. As she was nervous, Serenityy in bed right after the shower without checking his room out. She had no idea he had a minibar in here. After much thought, Serenity grabbed her phone from the bedside table and googled something¡­ A large hand came and took away the phone in her hands. Zachary¡¯s husky voice was heard. ¡°Seren, I hope I can be the one to teach you. ¡± Chapter 695 Chapter 695 Chapter 695 Having been caught searching the web, Serenity could not stop the burn in her cheeks. She sat up and snatched her phone back. Locking the screen, Serenity pretended like nothing ever happened and said, ¡°I was just looking around because I was bored Where¡¯s the alcohol?¡± Zachary brought two sses of alcohol over and gave one to Serenity. He uttered,¡± We didn¡¯t have dinner, so we can¡¯t drink much. Just a little will do.¡± ¡°That¡¯s so little. I¡¯ll finish this in two gulps before I can taste the alcohol.¡± Serenity whined before taking the ss from Zachary. She took a sip to savor the taste. As expected, the liquor was not strong enough. He must be afraid she would get wasted. She downed the drink like it was water. Zachary took a sip and stared at her. Since he was not self¨Cconscious, he did not need alcohol to psyche up. ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to drink that? I¡¯ll have it if you¡¯re not going to.¡± Serenity reached out to grab his wine ss. His ss was bigger and had more alcohol than hers. Zachary stretched his arm up high so she could not steal his ss. He pushed her hand away and put the ss on the bedside table before pressing her down by the shoulders. While leaning in, he sealed her luscious lips and pinned her down onto the bed. ¡°Zachary¡­ ¡°I¡¯m a little scared¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t be scared. Leave it to me.¡± Zachary tenderly kissed her so she could rx her nerves. Taking in his affection, Serenity gradually loosened up and swayed along his hips as they lost themselves in a sea of lust. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. ¡°Your phone¡¯s ringing.¡± ¡°Ignore it.¡± He was too busy to pick up the phone. Ring, ring, ring The phone rang nonstop, but Zachary refused to pick up. The caller tried three times before giving up. It was Clive. Clive got the message that Zachary was back from his business trip. He wanted to ask Zachary out for a talk. Yet, Zachary did not take his call. Clive put his phone on the dinner table. While carrying the dishes out, Alice took notice of Clive¡¯s sour face. She asked with concern, ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Clive? You look upset. It¡¯s after office hours, so you shouldn¡¯t be thinking about work. You promised me. No business meetings tonight. We¡¯re going to the moviester.¡± Clive answered, ¡°I tried to give Zachary a call, but he won¡¯t answer. I called him three times too.¡± ¡°He just returned with his wife, and it¡¯s dinnertime. They must be eating. Do you have time tonight to meet him even if he picks up your call?¡± Alice looked at him with her piercing and threatening gaze. Clive could try to ditch her at home to have a talk with Zachary. Clive immediately responded, ¡°I don¡¯t have time tonight. I¡¯ll ask him out tomorrow. He must be busy since he just got back with Serenity.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. The couple was presently at Alice¡¯s family home. Since Mrs. Stone and her daughter were not around, the couple could talk without scruples. They did not need to worry about Elisa hearing about Serenity and Zachary. Clive intended to enjoy the movies with his wifeter before inviting Zachary out. The dark of the night was the perfect time to talk as Elisa would not know about it. Meanwhile, at Regent Residences¡­ Chapter 696 Chapter 696 Chapter 696 Zachary appeared rather delighted as he strolled down the stairs. Anyone near him right now could hear that he was humming to a tune. It had been a while since they got married, but Zachary was no longer just Serenity¡¯s husband by name. He took strides into the kitchen and grabbed the apron hanging off the door. Zachary put on the apron and opened the fridge to check for ingredients. He took out a few ingredients for the dishes he nned to make. First things first, Zachary wanted to make a broth suitable for women after their first time. He got the ingredients ready and dumped them in a slow cooker set on high. He then went on to prepare the next dish. After much thought, he gave Sam a call. With the line connected, Zachary instructed, ¡°Sam, deliver some live shrimp over. I don¡¯t see any fresh seafood in the fridge. ¡± The other dishes did not matter as Serenity¡¯s favorite was shrimp. It was a must- have. ¡°Have you and the missus had dinner yet?¡± Sam felt bad. ¡°You should¡¯ve asked Mrs. Lane to prepare your dinner in advance. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. It¡¯s no issue to have our dinnerter. I wasn¡¯t hungry. Serenity had something to eat at the office just now. ¡± ¡°Alright then. I¡¯ll send someone to deliver the live shrimp. It should take half an hour. ¡± Zachary was cool with that. Shrimp was easy to cook as it only took seconds. He could start on the other dishes first. It had been a while since the Great Mr. York cooked in the kitchen. While humming a song, he prepared the ingredients and cooked a few of his best dishes to serve his wife. Zachary never felt so thankful for his nana as he was right now. Nana raised them differently from the other wealthy families. At the request of Nana, Zachary, his brothers, and his cousins learned their way around the kitchen. He had his suspicions that Nana wanted them to be chefs and win their wives¡® hearts through their stomachs. The women would not be able to leave the boys once they got a taste of the boys¡® food. Zachary prepared Serenity¡¯s dinner with love in the kitchen while Serenityy in the bathroom. The hot bath rxed her aching body. Ring, ring, ring¡­ The phone that was put aside rang. It was her sister. Serenity quickly took the call. ¡°Seren, are you and Zachary home? I was busy and only saw your message now. Sorry, I didn¡¯t reply to you in time. ¡± ¡°I got back in the afternoon. Have you had dinner, Liberty? Where¡¯s Sonny? I miss him. ¡± Liberty replied with a smile, ¡°I¡¯m carrying Sonny on my back. I haven¡¯t had dinner. I just got back from the shop. I bought groceries, and I¡¯m almost home. I¡¯ll cook dinner when I get home. ¡± ¡°What about Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°I told Mrs. Lane to watch over your ce since you and Zachary weren¡¯t around. Someone has to look after your pets and garden. I can manage on my own. ¡± Although Brnyfield had tight security, Liberty was worried that no one was at home. Hence, she asked Mrs. Lane to house¨Csit. ¡°It¡¯ste. Sonny must be starving. ¡± Serenity felt bad for her sister. ¡°I made food for Sonny this morning and kept it in the thermal container. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. He had some at the shop, so he¡¯s not feeling hungry yet. ¡± Carrying her son on her back, Liberty climbed up the stairs with her groceries in hand. It was tiring, but Liberty had been keeping up with exercise to lose weight. Running around to set up her shop increased her workout and built her stamina too. It was unlike before when she was left catching her breath from climbing the stairs. ¡°I should leave you to make dinner, Liberty. I¡¯ll see you tomorrow. ¡± She would not be going over tonight. ¡°Sure. I¡¯m back at my rented apartment. I¡¯ll start on dinner now. ¡± Liberty stopped in front of her ce and hung up the call. She whipped out her keys to unlock the door before carrying her son into the house. Chapter 697 Chapter 697 Chapter 697 After a phone conversation with her sister, Serenity felt a lot better. She stood up and got out of the bath. Her darling husband had thoughtfully left a change of clothes for her before she went into the tub. Ten minutester, Serenity went down the stairs. All was quiet downstairs. Serenity thought their house in Brynfield was eerily silent. Since he was always homete, she did not have anyone to talk to when she got home. That was why she wanted to have pets. Mrs. Ler joined the family, adding some noise to the quiet home. To her dismay, he bought a vi that was bigger than the property in Brynfield. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. It was a quieter environment for the couple to live in. Once on the ground floor, Serenity could hear themotion in the kitchen. Serenity drew close and saw Zachary busy in the kitchen. Without startling him, she leaned against the door frame and observed him. He looked most charming when he was earnest at work! Nevertheless, he was attractive doing anything at all. While watching him, Serenity was hit with an idea and pulled out her phone. She tapped on the Facebook app and started taking a video of him to post on stories. She included a caption. ¡°The stunning back of the man who is making me dinner. ¡± After posting the video, she clicked on the video to watch it herself when Zachary caught the noise. Turning around, he saw her and beamed. Zachary remarked, ¡°Why don¡¯t you have a lie¨Cdown? I¡¯m not done cooking. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m hungry. ¡°. Since he had spotted her, Serenity made her way into the kitchen. She leaned in to look into the pan over the fire and uttered, ¡°I¡¯m too hungry to lie down. It¡¯s only the two of us, so we don¡¯t need a lot. ¡± ¡°I¡¯m making five dishes. Do you want some fruit since you¡¯re hungry?¡± Serenity could guess what he was cooking by the ingredients he set aside. She replied, ¡°These dishes won¡¯t take too long. I¡¯ll wait. ¡± Just then, the doorbell rang. ¡°Who¡¯s that?¡± Serenity asked. ¡°I didn¡¯t find your favorite shrimp in the fridge, so I asked Mrs. Lane where she usually gets her supply. I ced an order for immediate delivery. It must be them. Go and take a look. ¡± ¡°Sure. ¡± Turning on her heel, Serenity advanced forward before tracing her footsteps back. She wrapped her arms around his waist from behind and buried her face against his back. ¡°Zachary, are you going to always be good to me?¡± Zachary stopped what he was doing and held her hands around his waist. He turned around and looked deeply into her eyes. ¡°You¡¯re my wife. I will always be good to you. I will never be the one to leave you. I won¡¯t ever agree to a divorce even if that¡¯s what you want!¡± To him, marriage was for a lifetime. Serenity may get angry when his cover was blown, but Zachary would not possibly let her go. Serenity uttered with a smile, ¡°We just became a real couple. Don¡¯t talk about divorce. ¡± She loosened her grip around his waist. ¡°Carry on with your cooking. I¡¯ll get the shrimp. You can leave it out next time. There¡¯s no need to get the shrimp delivered. ¡± ¡°It¡¯s your favorite. I¡¯d satisfy your needs if time permits. ¡± With a smile, Serenity took off. Chapter 698 Chapter 698 Chapter 698 A silver sedan stopped right outside the vi, and a person stood at the gate. Through the gate, Serenity looked at the figure and thought it looked familiar. At closer inspection, she recognized that it was not the delivery person but her mother- inw who she had met a few times. ¡°Mom. ¡± Serenity took a moment to take in the surprise before rushing to open the gate. It was then she realized she did not have a key to unlock the gate. Serenity apologetically said to her mother¨Cinw who was on the other side of the gate, ¡°I didn¡¯t know I needed a key to open the gate, Mom. Hang on for a second. I¡¯ll get the key from Zachary. ¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Tania faintly replied and stopped pressing on the doorbell. Serenity rushed back into the house, running into the kitchen. She told Zachary,¡± Your mom is here, Zachary. I tried to open the gate, but I couldn¡¯t without a key. Give me a key. I¡¯ll unlock the gate now. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say your mother was going to drop by two dayster? Why doesn¡¯t she have a key?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°The house keys are on the coffee table in the living room. My mom might have forgotten to bring hers. ¡± ¡°That reminds me. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. What¡¯s the portion like? I wonder if your mom has had dinner. ¡± Her mother¨Cinw¡¯s sudden visit was not something Serenity was going to take lightly. ¡°My mom must¡¯ve had dinner by now. ¡± ¡°Oh. ¡± Serenity took quick paces out of the kitchen and picked up the keys from the coffee table on her way out. She rushed to the gate, only to make her way back to the kitchen. Serenity said, ¡°How about you open the gate for your mother while I cook?¡± She was concerned her mother¨Cinw might not look favorably upon her since Zachary was busy in the kitchen while she hung around. Her mother-inw would not be too pleased that Serenity was not taking good care of Zachary. Some mothers¨Cinw could not stand their sons contributing to house chores. They believed the daughters¨Cinw should be doing all the work. They did not want their 2/3 flesh and blood to be tired. As mothers¨Cinw, they expected their daughters¨Cinw to work while being on top of caring for children and handling house chores. On the other hand, mothers whose sons¨Cinw took on the household chores would think their daughters married well. If the tables were turned and their sons handled household tasks, these women would groan about theirzy daughters¨Cinw. They would feel bad that their sons married a wife who was not raised well. Serenity knew a thing or two about issues between mothers¨Cinw and daughters-in-w from her sister¡¯s failed marriage. She was worried she would face the same problem. ¡°It¡¯s fine. Go and open the gate for your mother¨Cinw. ¡± ¡°Will your mom me me for not relieving you of household tasks? Will she make you do nothing at home while I should do all the work?¡± Zachary answered, ¡°I don¡¯t think so. We¡¯ve only been married for three months. You only met my mom once or twice. There shouldn¡¯t be any issue between you two. ¡± His parents, uncles, and aunts only had sons. Nana taught all the boys to be kind to all the women at home. Growing up, Dad would often tell him that Mom is the only woman in the family, so they should love, care for, and protect Mom together. By right, Mom should not have a problem with him being in the kitchen. This was because Dad often cooked for Mom. ¡°You¡¯re not even sure about that. You should open the gate. ¡± Serenity went up to pull the apron off Zachary. ¡°Seren. ¡± Zachary grabbed her hand and tenderly uttered, ¡°You don¡¯t have to care what my mom thinks of you. We¡¯re the ones in this marriage. We decide how we run the household. I¡¯ll talk to my mom if she says anything to you. ¡± There was no reason his mother could enjoy his father¡¯s undivided attention and care if Serenity could not. As the husband, Zachary was d to make his wife dinner. It was nobody¡¯s business to change that. ¡°Now get out there. Don¡¯t keep my mom waiting. ¡± Zachary lowered his head to kiss her cheek. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m here for you. ¡± Chapter 699 Chapter 699 Chapter 699 Zachary¡¯s loving statement gave Serenity assurance. She uttered with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll open the gate for your mom now. Don¡¯te at me if I fight your mom for using me of skipping on house chores.¡± Serenity was a firm believer that all household tasks should not fall on the married women¡¯s shoulders. She would argue with her mother¨Cinw if thetter started criticizing her as Mrs. Brown did to her sister. Zachary smiled. ¡°Alright. I won¡¯te at you, but I trust my mom won¡¯t say that to you.¡± Even if Mom had a problem with Serenity, she would only mention it to Zachary. Mom would only tell it to Serenity¡¯s face when she felt Serenity had crossed the line. Serenity went to unlock the gate for her mother¨Cinw. Tania was getting impatient from waiting, but she did not show it on her face. While opening the gate, Serenity apologetically said, ¡°Sorry to keep you waiting, Mom.¡± Tania tenderly asked, ¡°Have you and Zachary eaten?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Not yet. Zachary¡¯s cooking in the kitchen.¡± With the gate opened, Serenity asked as Tania walked into the vi, ¡°Mom, don¡¯t you want to drive your car into the driveway?¡± Stopping in her tracks, Tania contemted before answering, ¡°I just dropped by to see you. I¡¯m leaving in a minute. I¡¯ll just leave the car there.¡± Since finding out that her son got the nasty flu during a business trip, Tania had been keeping in touch with her son every two days. She knew that her daughter¨Cinw took great care of her son and kept him on a tight leash, making him take his daily shots. Tania had mixed feelings about it. She was not fond of Serenity as her daughter¨Cinw. Her son had no choice but to marry Serenity to repay her kindness for saving Grandma May. Tania thought Zachary would never fall in love with Serenity. To her surprise, it took less than three months for Zachary to develop feelings. Although Serenity had an aunt like Mrs. Stone as family support, the Stones¡® wealth had nothing to do with Serenity. Tania would not think highly of Serenity just because of her connection with Mrs. Stone. Cultured as she was, Tania would not say or do anything to Serenity. Zachary was spending the rest of his life with Serenity, not her. Her son knew what he was doing. He could decide whether Serenity made a good wife or if the marriage was working. It was so long as Zachary did not mind Serenity¡¯s upbringing and being theughingstock of the community. ¡°Zachary¡¯s cooking?¡± Tania appeared surprised. ¡°It¡¯s been a while since he cooked anything.¡± Serenity closed the gate and went into the house with her mother¨Cinw. While walking, Serenity happily chatted, ¡°He bragged about his cooking. I wasn¡¯t convinced, so I told him to show me. Mom, you should try Zachary¡¯s cookingter and be the judge of who is the better cook.¡± Tania¡¯s impable face from religious skincare only the wealthy could afford beamed. She said, ¡°Zack isn¡¯t the best cook among his brothers and cousins. The one with the talent is Austin. Austin always hides away in the kitchen to create new vors since he was a little boy. After going at it for over a decade, he¡¯s now the best cook in the house.¡± Austin was Tania¡¯s youngest son. He did not take up a position at York Corporation. Instead, he started his own business in the food and beverage scene. Austin had made quite a name for himself. ¡°The simple dishes you make are delicious. I prefer your cooking to Zack¡¯s. ¡°It¡¯s been a while since I tasted Zack¡¯s cooking. I can¡¯t remember the taste.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°You came at the right time. You can savor Zachary¡¯s cookingter.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Tan¨ªa nodded. Since Zachary took over the management of York Corporation, he had not caught a break and had no time to go into the kitchen. Plus, he lived on his own and rarely came back to the old residence. As his mom, Tania had not tasted her son¡¯s cooking for a long time. The mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw had a pleasant talk while walking with Serenity keeping the conversation alive. Chapter 700 Chapter 700 Chapter 700 Zachary was worried at first that his mother would give Serenity an attitude. He quickly whipped up the last dish and hurried out of the kitchen. He was about to head out the door when his mom and wife waltzed in, sharing a talk andugh. He stopped as his handsome face wrinkled in smiles. Zachary knew he had nothing to worry about. Serenity had the knack of setting the tone that his mother would have nothing to pick at. ¡°Mom.¡± Zachary tenderly called his mom. ¡°I got a good whiff of the delicious aroma the moment I came in. I guess your cooking hasn¡¯t digressed.¡± Taniaplimented her son before turning to Serenity. ¡°You gotta keep it up, Serenity. Don¡¯t let him beat you.¡± ¡°Mom, you haven¡¯t even tried his cooking yet. Zachary¡¯s food might not taste as good as it smells. He should be the cook every day to refine his skills if he loses to me. He should be put in charge of the family dinner during New Year.¡± With her beautiful eyes sparkling, Tania responded with a grin, ¡°You must get him to practice when he has time, so we don¡¯t get food poisoning.¡± Zachary listened as his mother and wife shared a pleasant conversation. His mother tried to fool Serenity into taking care of the three meals, and Serenity made a beautifuleback without stepping on Mom¡¯s toes. The doorbell rang again. ¡°It must be the seafood delivery. I¡¯ll go collect it.¡± Turning on her heel, Serenity headed for the gate once again. With Serenity gone, Tania began to circle her son. ¡°Mom, whatever it is, you can tell me. Seren isn¡¯t here. She can¡¯t hear you.¡± Tania extended her arm and tugged on Zachary¡¯s apron before saying, ¡°You look a bit like your dad like this.¡± ¡°I¡¯m my dad¡¯s son. Of course, I look like my dad.¡± Zachary led his mother to sit down on the sofa. ¡°How long has it been since the heir of the Yorks and CEO of York Corporation held a pot and pan? You¡¯re going back to cooking for a woman. Zack, I¡¯m impressed.¡± She was not very fond of Serenity as a daughter¨Cinw, but she knew her son well. Without an older family member ying the matchmaker, the boy would forever live a single life. Her son could not stand ying with girls when he was a little kid. Teenage boys would start pursuing girls while her son got dozens of love letters without even trying. He handed the letters to the teacher without even opening them. The girls, who wrote the love letters, got an educational speech from the teacher. Over time, many girls could no longer muster the courage to confess their feelings or give him love letters. They simply admired him from afar. Zack would not attend any trips with buddies if there were any girls tagging along. In short, he had a thing against engaging with women. Grandma May had once suspected Zack was misogynistic. As Tania had a good understanding of Zachary¡¯s character, however displeased, she did not stop Grandma May from fixing him and Serenity up. She wanted to see if Serenity could change her son¡¯s attitude toward young women. Tania could ept Serenity if there was chemistry between the couple. She would not have had hard feelings if the couple decided to split. Tania could then set her son up with an heiress of an equal footing with the Yorks. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Zachary uttered in a gentle voice, ¡°Mom, I¡¯m only walking the same path as my dad. Dad is a role model.¡± Tania was speechless. Chapter 701 Chapter 701 Chapter 701 Tania¡¯s husband had been treating her like a princess since she married him, and it had been going on for over three decades. To her husband, Tania was the most important person in his life. After a brief silence, Tania said to her son, ¡°What? Are you afraid I¡¯ll criticize your wife for leaving the cooking to you while she does nothing? I mean, you just got back from a business trip, and you just got better from a long cold. She shouldn¡¯t have let you work in the kitchen. ¡°I¡¯m not saying you can¡¯t dote on your wife, but don¡¯t do it excessively and spoil her. She¡¯ll be egoistic and willful. What if it gives her a reason to do as she pleases and stir trouble for you?¡± Zachary¡¯s face fell. ¡°Fine, fine. I won¡¯t talk ill about Serenity. Look at you. I¡¯m just bringing a few points to your attention. It¡¯s not like I¡¯m saying she¡¯s acting this way now, but you¡¯re already giving me an attitude. Look at your long face.¡± Serenity would be thrilled to find out she was living a real Cindere story. Tania¡¯s concern was her getting out of line because she would be at a higher social standing, leaving her son to clean up the mess behind her. s, the few words of advice upset her son instead. His attractive face turned sour. ¡°Mom, you haven¡¯t spent much time with Seren, so you don¡¯t know her. Still, you can trust your son¡¯s judgment. You should know that Seren is no bully.¡± The sisters carried on a discreet way of life after reuniting with their rich and powerful aunt, Mrs. Stone. Anyone hanging around the higher society would know that Serenity and her sister were Mrs. Stone¡¯s nieces while the people of the outside world still had no idea. Oh, the Browns were aware of that fact. Hank¡¯s parents and sister must be kicking themselves now. Zachary had put the word out, and soon, they would lose their jobs. The Browns were in for a bigger surprise. ¡°I believe you. I promise I won¡¯t bring it up again.¡± Tania did not want to make her son angry. ¡°You¡¯re looking well. It seems you¡¯re putting on some weight. Serenity must have taken great care of you.¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Mom, are you sure I¡¯m putting on weight?¡± He quickly lowered his head to check his belly. It was t. Nothing was sagging anywhere. He stepped on the weighing scale when he was in the hospital. Zachary was at the standard weight. ¡°It¡¯s been a while since I saw you. I feel you gained some pounds. So you didn¡¯t? I guess my eyesight must be failing me.¡± Serenity was carrying a bag of shrimp into the house when she heard thest part of her mother¨Cin¨C law¡¯s remark. Her mind harked back to when she ran into her mother¨Cinw while shopping. The way her mother¨C inw looked at her then was as if she did not know Serenity. Later, Serenity brought it up to Zachary, and Zachary said that his mother had bad eyesight. It turned out that her mother¨Cinw really had poor vision. ¡°Here¡¯s the shrimp.¡± Zachary walked over and took the bag of live shrimp from Serenity. He opened the bag for a look. ¡°They¡¯re huge,¡± Serenitymented. ¡°Yeah.¡± Zachary then brought the bag of seafood into the kitchen, leaving Serenity to keep his mother company. Serenity noticed her mother¨Cinw sitting on the sofa without a ss of water on the coffee table. She poured a ss of water for her mother¨Cinw and turned on the TV before saying, ¡°Have a seat, Mom. I¡¯ll help out in the kitchen.¡± Tania nodded her head. ¡°Go on. I¡¯m not an outsider. You don¡¯t have to tend to me.¡± Turning on her heel, Serenity entered the kitchen. At least, Serenity was aware that she should help instead of sitting around and waiting for dinner to be served. Tania¡¯s disapproval toward Serenity was not as strong as before. Ten minutester, Tania found herself sitting at the dinner table despite already having her dinner. She could not refuse her son and daughter¨Cinw¡¯s invitation. ¡°Mom, try some of Zachary¡¯s cooking.¡± N?velDrama.Org (C) content. With a smile, Serenity served her mother¨Cinw the dishes and urged her to taste the food. Tania watched as her son put on disposal gloves to peel the shrimp. Needless to say, the shelled shrimp would not find its way to her te. Tania did not know how to feel about this. She would be happy when her husband showered her with attention like that. Chapter 702 Chapter 702 Chapter 702 It did not sit well with Tania that her son was so thoughtful toward her daughter¨Cin-w. It was a good thing her daughter-inw showed more consideration than her son. ¡°Let me try.¡± Tania took a bite out of the food Serenity served her. After getting a taste, Tania wanted to say that her son was a better cook than Serenity, but it was not something she could say in good conscience. Tania debated in her mind for a while before deciding to go for the truth. ¡°Zack can¡¯t beat Serenity. You should spend some time in the kitchen and cook for Serenity more often.¡± It could help the couple to bond too. Tania trailed on, ¡°But you usually are busy at work¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mom. I won¡¯t let Zachary into the kitchen during workdays.¡± Mrs. Lane was part of the family now. Tania was pleased with Serenity¡¯s stance. ¡°Do you want the shrimp, Mom?¡± Zachary asked his mother. ¡°I had dinner, but Serenity asked me to be the judge of who is the better cook between you two. That¡¯s why I tried. Carry on with your dinner. I¡¯ll go and watch TV.¡± Tania finished the food on her te and put down her cutleries before getting up to leave the dining room. Once his mother was gone, Zachary put the te of shelled shrimp in front of Serenity and uttered tenderly, ¡°Eat up, honey. Have some broth with it. It¡¯s He made eyes at Serenity. The face Zachary pulled nearly made Serenity barf. It was hard to believe his stoic face would carry other animated expressions. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Clearing her throat, Serenity took a quick nce into the living room and found her mother¨Cinw taking a seat gracefully on the sofa. She gasped in awe at her mother- inw¡¯s cultured mannerisms. Tania was more of ady than ady in the TV series, disying grace in the mere act of sitting down. Zachary drew close and whispered in Serenity¡¯s ear. ¡°Fear not. Mom won¡¯t peek at us.¡± 20 It would be a different story if Nana was here. Nana had the tendency to pry. Mom was brought up in a way that she would not be furtive to look and hear. ¡°Do you still feel sore, Seren?¡± A flush swept across Serenity¡¯s face as she gently pushed Zachary away and whispered, ¡°We¡¯re having dinner. Behave.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything.¡± With the scorching sensation of his lips and tongue brushing against her cheeks, he said in a gruff voice, ¡°It won¡¯t hurt like that anymore.¡± Serenity stuffed his mouth with shrimp. ¡°The food on the table isn¡¯t enough to shut your mouth. Hurry up and eat. You might not be hungry, but I am.¡± Zachary chuckled. Straightening his back, he picked up his cutleries and watched her eat while picking on his food¡­ ¡°Is the food not to your liking?¡± ¡°You¡¯re to my liking¡± Serenity was lost for words. The guy was bing more of a smooth talker by the minute. ¡°You¡¯re a feast for the eyes. I get a good appetite just watching you. I can have several helpings of the main course.¡± Serenity served him some food. ¡°You worked all night to prepare dinner. Have some. I don¡¯t want your mom to think I¡¯m starving you.¡± Zacharyughed. Such life may be mundane, but he found happiness in its simplicity. He hoped they would continue to be sweet and happy just like his parents. His parents¡® rtionship was still going strong after all these years. Chapter 703 Chapter 703 Chapter 703 After dinner, Zachary cleared the table while Serenity wiped and tidied the ce. She then ventured out of the dining room to take a seat opposite her mother¨Cinw. Serenity looked at the time and said, ¡°Mom, why don¡¯t you drive the car into the driveway and stay the night?¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay. I¡¯ll head back in a bit. Your father¨Cinw doesn¡¯t feelfortable if I¡¯m not at home with him.¡± After her son took over thepany, her husband retired and had not left Tania¡¯s side since. Her husband could not get used to Tania staying away from home. Serenity was envious of her parents¨Cinw¡¯s rtionship. They had been together for decades and were still faithful to each other into their golden years. N?velDrama.Org (C) content. ¡°Mom, I didn¡¯t know Zachary bought this vi. He never told me. I only heard about it now. The ce is bigger than the apartment in Brynfield. It feels empty that it¡¯s just the two of us here. How about you move in with Dad?¡± Tania was taken aback. ¡°You want to live with your inws?¡± Many young daughters¨Cinw were against living with their parents-inw. Well, it was not just daughters¨Cinw. Tania¡¯s three sons moved out to live on their own when they were of age. They preferred not to share the same living space with their parents. Youngsters were living in a different world than the oldies. ¡°I don¡¯t mind.¡± Tania said with a smile, ¡°But Zack doesn¡¯t like living with elders. I think we should remain at the old residence and give you youngsters some space.¡± Serenity failed short of Tania¡¯s expectations and living together would mean Serenity¡¯s ws to be put under a magnifying ss. It would not help Tania to warm up to Serenity. They might as well stick to the status quo¨CSerenity believed her mother¨Cinw was nice while Tania would not pick on Serenity¡¯s faults every day. Everybody would be happy, and besides, absence made the heart grow fonder. Once Zachary came out of the kitchen, Tania rose to her feet and excused herself. 2/3 ¡°Zack,e and see me off.¡± Serenity initially wanted to get up and walk her mother¨Cinw to the car, but she sat still since the mother and son must have something to talk about privately. Zachary quietly walked with his mother out of the house. Once out of the vi and near the gate, Tania stopped and asked her son, ¡°Zack, are you nning to spend the rest of your life with Serenity?¡± ¡°What are you trying to say, Mom?¡± ¡°You get what I mean. I won¡¯t interfere with your decision, but Serenity needs a few lessons on etiquette. She¡¯s the missus of the York family and your wife. She¡¯ll be apanying you to social events, and her actions represent you. ¡°People willugh at you if she doesn¡¯t do a good job. See if you can bring it up to her. Is she okay with brushing up on her etiquette? Does she know anything else other than crafting? She can take up a few other skills too.¡± Zachary looked at his mother and inquired, ¡°Which aspect of her behavior is failing, Mom?¡± Tania opened her mouth, but no words came out. She believed Serenity did not carry herself like thedy of a wealthy family. Nevertheless, Tania was grasping at straws to pick out what Serenity wascking. Serenity was magnanimous, proper, and not an embarrassment to Zachary. A whileter, Tania replied, ¡°I¡¯ll guide her when youe clean to her about who you are. She can do better at presenting herself.¡± She then asked her son, ¡°Are you still married by name? Three months should be enough for you to be the judge of Serenity¡¯s character if you n to spend a lifetime with her. She doesn¡¯t know who you are, so you don¡¯t have to put up an act. The way she carries herself and handles issues can show her personality. ¡°Don¡¯t get intimate with her if you still can¡¯t make up your mind. At least, it will lessen the blow and hurt if you do divorce.¡± Turning ck in the face, Zachary uttered, ¡°Mom, Nana said that York boys do not believe in divorce.¡± Tania had no words. The person who was adamant about getting a divorce six monthster was him. It was his own words, not hers. Tania only found out about itter. ¡°I¡¯ll only have Serenity as my wife!¡± Chapter 704 Chapter 704 Chapter 704 N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Tania stared intently at her son for a while before breaking the silence. ¡°You call the shots for your own affairs. I can only give you some advice. I¡¯m going back before your dad gets worried. Are you and your wifeing home for New Year?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t Nana tell you? I¡¯ll be back with Seren to the old residence for New Year.¡± ¡°The old residence. Oh, you¡¯re referring to that mansion. No wonder your nana has been going there lately.¡± It turned out her son wanted to take Serenity back to Whitmore Mansion to celebrate New Year¡¯s holiday. The ce had been through the vicissitude of life and reflected the former glory of the Yorks¡® ancestors. ¡°How long are you nning to keep up with the act?¡± ¡°I got it thought out, Mom. I know what I¡¯m doing. I¡¯ll let the whole of Wiltspoon know about my marriage to Seren when the timees.¡± He could get a start on wedding nning. Zachary envisioned a beautiful ending, but only God knew how reality would pan out. Tania replied, ¡°Sure. I¡¯m off then.¡± ¡°Be safe on the road. Call me in advance when you¡¯reing next time. Don¡¯t scare your daughter¨Cin¨C law.¡± Tania answered, ¡°Don¡¯t make me out to be an evil mother¨Cinw. Serenity has the spunk to answer back. I don¡¯t think I can scare her.¡± Zachary fell silent before thanking his mother. ¡°Why are you thanking me?¡± ¡°Thank you for not finding fault with your daughter¨Cinw.¡± Tania could not resist the urge to kick him. ¡°I want you to have a nice life and be happy. I can put up with her ws if you like Serenity and she makes you happy. I¡¯d at most take a soft approach to correct her wrongs without nitpicking.¡± The love she received from the Yorks over the decades had conditioned her to be more sensible than she was in her younger days. Tania was not mean at heart, to begin with. If there was something Tania had to point out, she found the couple did not marry into equal social standing. There was a gap there. She hoped Serenity could change for Zachary like brushing up on etiquettes and taking up a skill or two. ¡°Alright then. I got to go.¡± Tania got into the car. She waved her son goodbye and drove away. Zachary watched her mother disappear into the distance before making his way back into the house. His phone rang once again. Pulling out her phone, Zachary realized it was Clive on the other end. Clive called him when he was trying to make babies with Serenity for the first time. Zachary was tempted to cuss Clive out when he checked his phone for missed calls after the matter. Out of the times Clive could have called, why did it have to be when he was doing the deed? If Clive could read Zachary¡¯s mind, he would argue that he could not predict his call came untimely. ¡°What do you want?¡± Zachary tried to be kinder to Clive since Clive was his beloved wife¡¯s cousin. Nevertheless, there was no way he could be Mr. Nice Guy right away. ¡°See you at the Grand Hotel at midnight. I¡¯ll meet you at your house if I don¡¯t see you there.¡± Zachary furrowed his brows. ¡°Must I go?¡± ¡°What? Are you scared to see me?¡± Peevish, Zachary callously blurted, ¡°See you there!¡± It was frustrating that Clive turned out to be his wife¡¯s cousin! Chapter 705 Chapter 705 Chapter 705 On the other end of the line, Clive curtly said, ¡°I¡¯ll reveal to Serenity who you are if I don¡¯t see you there. She might not be angry about the other things you hide from her, but the fact that you¡¯re the great Mr. York will rub her the wrong way because of Elisa.¡± ck in the face, Zachary snapped back, ¡°I said I¡¯ll be there. Just wait for me.¡± The nerve of Clive to threaten him! ¡°I¡¯m the older cousin. Shouldn¡¯t you be the one to wait for me?¡± Zachary coldly uttered, ¡°The Grand Hotel belongs to you. You can be there any time. If you change the location to the Wiltspoon Hotel, I¡¯ll arrive early and wee you in the presidential suite.¡± ¡°Is something riding on your guilty conscience? Are you scared? Is that why you¡¯re making me wait for you?¡± ¡°Clive, cut the crap.¡± Clive chuckled. ¡°I¡¯m older than you. You can¡¯t change the fact that Serenity is my cousin. You don¡¯t have to acknowledge me as the older figure if you don¡¯t want to be Serenity¡¯s husband. It¡¯s rude that you don¡¯t respect me as an older family member when you¡¯re her husband. ¡°I might just pick on you in front of Serenity.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you dare!¡± N?velDrama.Org (C) content. Cliveughed hard. ¡°Why won¡¯t I? Do you think I like and fear you? I¡¯m dying to have you reced and introduce a better man to my cousin.¡± ¡°Out of everyone in Wiltspoon, no one is better and more brilliant than I am.¡± Zachary believed when Clive said he would get him reced. Nobody expected to end up in this sort of sticky situation. ¡°Zachary, when did you be so shameless? You may have Wiltspoon¡¯s business world in the palm of your hand, but that doesn¡¯t mean you¡¯re the best man out there.¡± Zachary faintly answered, ¡°Men be shameless when they get married.¡± Clive was at a loss for words. The changes in Zachary were a real eye¨Copener to Clive. 2/3 ¡°I¡¯m hanging up if there¡¯s nothing else. I need to put my wife in bed before I can sneak out to see you.¡± It was Clive¡¯s turn to be appalled. ¡°Don¡¯t talk as though we¡¯re having an affair.¡± ¡°Yuck. As if I¡¯d ever have an affair with you.¡± Zachary hung up the call. With his enemy mming the phone ahead of him, Clive removed the phone from his ear and clicked his tongue. Clive mumbled to himself, ¡°I could say the same about you. As if I¡¯d ever have an affair with you.¡± ¡°Honey, who are you having an affair with? Do you have a mistress? Who¡¯s the miserable wretch?¡± Alice heard Clive¡¯s murmurs as she wasing out of the bathroom. Livid, she charged toward Clive and questioned Clive with a straight face. She was already unhappy with him. Clive had time to go to the movies with her for a change to relive their date nights. However, he ended up snoozing off on the chair when they got inside. It riled Alice 1. up. In the end, they left before the movie finished. Once out of the movie theater, Clive found his energy back again. He used to watch even the cringiest romance movies when they first went out. Clive would sit in the movies until the credits rolled and remember the storyline better than she did. Now that they were married, Clive would doze off the moment he stepped into the theater¡­ The difference before and after marriage was huge. Clive did not bother to act interested anymore. ¡°Alice, what are you thinking? I was just off the phone with Zachary.¡± Alice widened her eyes. ¡°You were on the phone with Zachary talking about having ari affair. You guys¡­¡± Clive responded, ¡°Honey, where is your mind wandering to? We¡¯ve been married for years. You should know by now that your husband is a straight guy.¡± ¡°How would I know if you swing both ways?¡± Clive was speechless. Chapter 706 Chapter 706 Chapter 706 Clive ryed the whole phone conversation he had with Zachary to his wife, clearing any doubts that he swung both ways. Zachary did not tell Serenity about the call from Clive to meet up. He went back into the house and joined his wife on the sofa to watch TV. They enjoyed the TV program until Serenity started to yawn. Zachary eagerly turned off the TV and carried her upstairs. Back in the bedroom, Zacharyy in bed with Serenity to chat for a while. The conversation ended when the person next to him stopped speaking. Tilting his head, Zachary realized Serenity had drifted into slumbend. Zachary heaved himself up and drew close to her before murmuring, ¡°Seren. Seren.¡± Serenity was asleep to realize what was going on around her. With his mind at ease, Zachary kissed her cheeks and tenderly uttered, ¡°Goodnight, Seren.¡± He then lifted the covers and tiptoed out of bed. Zachary tucked Serenity in, grabbed his coat, and snuck out of the bedroom. Out of the vi, Zachary called his chauffeur and security detail to meet him at the Grand Hotel. He got to make a grand entrance to see Clive. Clive told Zachary to meet him at the Grand Hotel at midnight, and Zachary arrived at midnight sharp. Not a minute too soon. ¡°Sir.¡± The team of bodyguards went up to Zachary, Zachary got down from the car and went straight inside. While walking, he said, ¡± Keep up.¡± His security detail followed Zachary into the Grand Hotel. As it was midnight, the hotel was rather quiet. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Clive must have informed the receptionists in advance as the hotel staff did not seem surprised about Zachary¡¯s arrival. Zachary took the green channel all the way to the top floor of the hotel. Like Wiltspoon Hotel, the Grand Hotel had a presidential suite on the top floor catered exclusively to Clive. Once on the top floor, Zachary, escorted by his security detail, came to the entrance of the presidential suite. There were two men in ck standing at the door. They were the Stones¡® bodyguards. Clive did not show off like Zachary. He would bring along two bodyguards to social events, but most of the time, he was without any security detail. Zachary would argue that his security detail was to protect his chastity and not for ostentation. The two bodyguards put their hands out and stopped Zachary. Pulling a long face, Zachary shot a piercing re at the bodyguards and remarked callously, ¡°Mr. Stone invited me over.¡± One of the bodyguards courteously uttered, ¡°Mr. Stone is waiting for you inside, Mr. York, but you came empty¨Chanded.¡± Zachary scowled. ¡°What do you mean?¡± The bodyguard exined patiently, ¡°Mr. York, Mr. Stone said that he¡¯s your wife¡¯s cousin, so that makes him your rtive. Since this is the first meeting, he won¡¯t see you if all etiquette rules are not observed. You can go back, and he¡¯ll meet with your wife tomorrow instead.¡± Zachary grimaced. ¡°How is it our first¨Ctime meeting? I¡¯ve known Mr. Stone for many years. Don¡¯t you know?¡± ¡°Mr. Stone mentioned that it¡¯s your first encounter since bing family.¡± Zachary was rendered speechless. Clive was Serenity¡¯s family. It was impolite to show up empty¨Chanded when seeing the wife¡¯s family for the first time. Zachary fell silent for a moment before conceding. Turning around, he instructed Sam. ¡°Sam, can you check whether there¡¯s any shop open at this hour? Just buy anything you can find.¡± So long as he got something to offer Clive. Chapter 707 Chapter 707 Chapter 707 This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mr. York.¡± The bodyguard spoke up once more. Zachary turned his attention to the bodyguard. The bodyguard uttered, ¡°Mr. Stone said you need to get it yourself to show your sincerity. You can¡¯t let your bodyguards run the errand for you. Your respect for Mr. Stone represents your love for Ms. Hunt.¡± In other words, Zachary would be insulting Clive if he did not make the purchase himself. It meant he did not love Serenity enough to give Clive basic respect. Clive¡¯s terrorization saw Zachary seething with rage. Yet, Clive got him where it hurt. Although Serenity and Mrs. Stone had not known each other for long, they were rted by blood. Zachary could not take the Stones lightly. Without another word, Zachary turned on his heel and left. He went to get a gift for Clive. The major supermarkets were closed. Zachary had to go to a convenience store that operated 24/7. He did not take his time to pick a gift. Instead, he led his security team into the convenience store and cleared the shelves. The store employee was startled by the massive group of men entering the store with solemn faces. Even though the leader could pass as a celebrity, the store employee was not in the mood to appreciate his hotness. What if they were the mafia? Her survival instincts kicked in to protect herself and had the police on speed dial. It was a good thing that these people swept the items off the shelves and piled them up on the cash register. The hottest sourpuss solemnly uttered, ¡°Check out, please.¡± The store employee was relieved. They were not the mafia. A good few minutester, Zachary exited the convenience store together with the security detail. Every bodyguard had their hands full with grocery bags. The store employee took a nce at the shelves. Those people practically emptied the stock. It stuck in her mind that among the stuff bought, there were also packs of sanitary pads¡­ Why did a bunch of men need sanitary pads? Zachary finally met Clive twenty minutester. While Zachary went on a shopping spree with his bodyguards, Clive sat on the sofa, munching on snacks and watching TV. Clive took it easy for sure. Zachary was tempted to fling his bought goods at Clive when he walked into his nemesis chixing. Pulling a sour face, Zachary drew close and dropped all the grocery bags onto the coffee table. He then went out. Zachary grabbed the other bags from the bodyguards and moved them into the suite, piling them onto the coffee table and two¨Cseater sofa. It was quite a heap of stuff. Then, he went on to sit on the single¨Cseater opposite Clive. ¡°Is that enough respect for you?¡± Zachary coldly snapped. Clive lowered the TV volume before rummaging through the items in the bags. As he looked, he nitpicked, ¡°Zachary, what did you get? Are they even worth anything? The stuff is for kids. ¡°I don¡¯t even have children. This brand of cigarette tastes awful. You could at least get me cigars. This is not good alcohol.¡± He nced at the bags. ¡°You went to a convenience store. Shouldn¡¯t you at least get me something from a major supermarket?¡± Clive caught a glimpse of the sanitary pads among the random things in one bag. Pulling out the packs, he tossed them at Zachary. Zachary pped the flying packs away, but one pack of sanitary pads fell into his arms. ¡°Zachary, are these what you¡¯re giving me as gifts?¡± Chapter 708 Chapter 708 Chapter 708 Zachary could not hide the embarrassment on his handsome face when he got a good look at the item. Clive gave Zachary hell. Zachary reacted by going all the way to the convenience store and clearing the shelves. He did not even look at what he grabbed, so he had no idea the sanitary pads were caught among the stuff. ¡°You have a wife.¡± Zachary threw the pack of sanitary pads back to Clive. Clive burst intoughter. Cliveughed so hard that Zachary wanted to pounce on him and strangle him! In all the years of fighting, Zachary had never been so awkward before Clive. Clive could not stop guffawing for a long time. Rubbing his belly, he said, ¡°Zachary, are you trying to make meugh to my grave so you can inherit my family¡¯s fortune? Man, you¡¯re killing me.¡± ¡°You better have a will written out to pass down your inheritance to me before you dieughing.¡± Clive¡¯sughter mellowed into a chuckle. ¡°You probably won¡¯t think much about my fortune. I¡¯m not as wealthy as you.¡± ¡°Well, better than nothing. Besides, your personal assets alone are worth several billion. I don¡¯t mind taking over your fortune at all.¡± Clive hurriedly got up and walked away before he killed himselfughing. He went to brew Zachary a pot of strong tea. He returned to his seat on the sofa momentster. Clive poured Zachary a cup of tea and slid the cup across the table to Zachary. Clive poured himself a ss of water. It was bad for sleep to drink tea in the middle of the night. The sleepless night would have a direct effect on energy levels at work the following day. In his mind, Zachary quietly called Clive out about his devious ploy. He could forget about sleep if he were to take a sip or two of strong tea. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Clive himself was enjoying a ss of water. 2/3 Zachary had a feeling that he would not win on Clive¡¯s turf. ¡°Is there something important for you to meet me here?¡± Zachary refused to drink the cup of tea. Although he would be wasting a few hours here, Zachary could sleep for a few hours with his wife in his arms before going to work if he stayed away from the tea. Clive beckoned to Zachary and said, ¡°Have some tea, Mr. York.¡± ¡°Thank you, but I don¡¯t like tea. Besides, it¡¯ste. The tea will disrupt my sleep routine.¡± Clive pulled a long face on purpose. ¡°Are you trying to be rude?¡± Zachary fearlessly looked at Clive without breaking his stare, pointing out, ¡°You¡¯re Seren¡¯s cousin. Even if you haven¡¯t bonded with her since the rtionship¡¯s new, you should at least be considerate of her. She¡¯ll bear the brunt if I lose sleep the entire night.¡± Clive was at a loss for words. The pair engaged in a stare¨Cdown before Clive put on a solemn face. He asked Zachary, ¡°What¡¯s the meaning of you keeping your identity from Serenity? Are you worried she¡¯ll go after your money after learning who you are?¡± ¡°I bet you already got your answer from Seren. I can¡¯t be bothered to answer you. Cut to the chase. It¡¯s late. You might not want to go home, but I miss Seren.¡± Since they finally had their wedding night today, Zachary did not want to waste any time with Clive. Clive was speechless. How could his nemesis be his cousin¨Cinw? On second thought, Clive was relieved that Zachary was not in love with his sister. Otherwise, Zachary would just get on his nerves every day. It was difficult to make a tough nut like Zachary yield. ¡°Elisa. I¡¯m most concerned about Elisa¡¯s feelings.¡± Clive got on with it. There was sarcasm in Zachary¡¯s eyes. He knew that Clive had Elisa¡¯s best interest at heart, not Serenity¡¯s. Clive had the nerve to act like he was the older cousin. ¡°Now that you¡¯re back from your business trip, you should steer clear of Elisa if you intend to visit my parents with Serenity. You know how madly in love Elisa is with you. Although she stopped pestering you, she hasn¡¯t let go of her feelings for youpletely. If she finds out you¡¯re Serenity¡¯s husband¡­¡± Clive did not have to finish his sentence as Zachary got the hint. Chapter 709 Chapter 709 Chapter 709 Zachary fell silent for a while before gruffly uttering, ¡°I believe you should be on top of keeping Elisa away.¡± He could not possibly be the one to get rid of Elisa. ¡°We¡¯ll make arrangements. You need to text me beforeing, so I can distract her away from seeing you. I¡¯ll keep my parents in the loop too.¡± Zachary had no problems with the n. He did not want Elisa to know about him and Serenity for now. They were in the honeymoon period of their rtionship. God knew what Elisa would do in a moment of madness when she found out. ¡°I probably can¡¯t make time before New Year, but I¡¯ll find time to visit your family with Serenity after.¡± Serenity had lost her parents. There was no way she would visit her money¨Chungry rtives back in her hometown. Family to Serenity was Liberty and the Stones. Clive asked, ¡°What are you doing before New Year? Isn¡¯t your office closed by Christmas Eve?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Stone Group was giving its employees time off around that time. Major corporations tended to be busy during the year¨Cend, only pausing their operations just before Christmas. ¡°I¡¯ll be swamped with work in the next few days, and then there¡¯s thepany¡¯s annual dinner. I need to fly to Annenburg the following day after the annual dinner for the CEO of FC & Co.¡¯s wedding. I¡¯ll probably be back just before New Year.¡± Clive had caught wind of the wedding bells ringing for the CEO of FC & Co., but he did not receive an invitation because hispany had no business with FC & Co. Since York Corporation and FC & Co. were business partners, Remy got on well with Zachary. It made sense that Zachary would make the trip to Annenburg. ¡°I¡¯m envious of you,¡± Clive remarked. Zachary immediately got the meaning behind his words. Clive was envious that Zachary had business and personal rtions with people like Ben. Ben was surrounded by awesome people. The Johnsons boys aside, Clive¡¯s brother- inw was the head of Meadspring¡¯s Lafayette family. The connection was enough to make anyone turn green. ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re always a little bit luckier than me.¡± Zachary faintly replied, ¡°We have our own destiny, carved by God. Just resign to fate.¡± Clive was speechless. ¡°Are you attending the annual dinner with Seren?¡± Zachary was quiet for a bit before answering, ¡°I¡¯ll sort it out.¡± He would keep Serenity behind the scenes for a while and let her show up after his speech. He would not be caught that way. Serenity could attend thepany¡¯s annual dinner, but she would have to sit out of the wedding in Annenburg. It was too risky as his cover could be blown. He supposed he had to tell Serenity that he had another business triping. Clive took a moment in silence too. He nodded without another word. Although he gave Zachary a hard time, Clive could tell that Zachary¡¯s feelings for Serenity were real. Zachary would not give Clive the time of day if he did not fall in love with Serenity. He would not sit here to talk to Clive and would walk away the moment Clive¡¯s bodyguards stopped him at the door. ¡°It¡¯ste. You should get back.¡± Clive turned off the TV and picked up the car keys. He rose to his feet. ¡°I should get home before my wife gets anxious from waiting.¡± Zachary snuck out whereas Clive¡¯s wife knew that Clive was meeting with Zachary. Alice was waiting for Clive at home, probably scared that Clive and Zachary might get into a tiff. Getting up, Zachary walked out of the room with Clive. The pair sauntered alongside each other to the lift, but there was no more exchange of words. Chapter 710 Chapter 710 Chapter 710 Clive¡¯s and Zachary¡¯s bodyguards trailed behind without a word. People would think they saw ghosts if this group of people did not make a sound while striding ahead. Clive stopped right before getting into the lift. ¡°Zachary,¡± he said in a low voice. Zachary turned his head to look at him. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Clive took a long pause before saying, ¡°Stop stealing my business.¡± Zachary nonchntly replied, ¡°People have a choice to change their minds before they seal the deal. Some even back out after signing the contract. That¡¯s how business is. You can¡¯t say that I steal your business. You should recognize that Stone Group is not strong enough to convince clients from choosing York Corporation instead. ¡°Business is business. Favor is another thing. Don¡¯t mix personal with business.¡± Clive remarked, ¡°Zachary, you have balls.¡± Zachary remained offhanded. ¡°Of course, I have balls, but you¡­ You¡¯ve been married for years now. When are you going to have a baby? Are you unwell or something? Since you¡¯re Serenity¡¯s cousin, I can rmend a specialist to help you.¡± ¡°Unwell, my foot. I¡¯m as fit as a fiddle. My wife and I want to enjoy a few years with just the two of us. There¡¯s no hurry to get a baby.¡± Clive nearly blew up. However, he understood that Zachary was not the only one curious about it. The world was also wondering if there was something wrong with him, his wife, or both because a baby was not in the picture yet. ¡°I got to go. You don¡¯t have to see me off, Mr. Stone,¡± Zachary said as Sam pressed the button for the lift. Zachary then entered the lift with his security detail. Clive was left outside the lift, screaming, ¡°Who¡¯s seeing you off? I¡¯m going home!¡± He could not believe Zachary went ahead to take his personal lift! Clive decided to go home and discuss with his wife about having a baby. They were blissfully married and enjoyed each other¡¯spany for years, but they were not getting any younger. Clive¡¯s parents did not rush them for a baby. Nevertheless, the Lafayette family had been urging them to make a big family. Every time Clive went with Alice to visit her family, his father¨Cinw would talk about babies while his mother¨Cinw would call Alice into the room for questioning. Well, it was all about the babies. It did not matter to Zachary whether Clive and his wife wanted to make babies. He would like to have a baby with Serenity though. Nana nagged all day long about having a great¨Cgranddaughter. Of course, Zachary would not put pressure on Serenity to get a daughter. He would like their child regardless of gender. If they had a son, the boy would be cute like Sonny. Zachary believed that his child with Serenity would be much more handsome and adorable than Sonny because he had better looks than Hank. The two CEOs returned home with a dream of bing a father. Fast asleep, Serenity had no idea that Zachary went out. Zachary came back to find her snoozing. He leaned in to kiss her, but the desire simply overtook him during the kiss and tempted him to take her on another sensual ride. Serenity thought she was dreaming. She woke up the next morning, staring at the ceiling. She was stuck between dreand and reality. Was she dreamingst night or did the man not keep it in his pants in the middle of the night and took advantage of her while she was sleeping? Cocking her head to Zachary, Serenity pinched his sleeping face and said, ¡°You must have had your way with me while I was sleeping. You lewd wolf!¡± Zachary had to go to work today. Since Mrs. Lane was not around, Serenity got up, washed up, and went downstairs to make her husband breakfast. She heard the doorbell halfway down the stairs. Chapter 711 Chapter 711 Chapter 711 Who was here bright early in the morning? Serenity went downstairs and found the keys to open the main door. She then walked out of the house to find a figure standing at the gate. The person was carrying two bags. By the looks of it, he must be a food deliveryman. ¡°Morning, Ms. Hunt.¡± Mr. Zen gleefully greeted her. ¡°Oh, it¡¯s you. Good morning.¡± It never urred to Serenity that it was the lobby manager of Wiltspoon Hotel. Raising the bags in his hands, Mr. Zen uttered with a smile, ¡°Mr. York called mest night to order two sets of breakfast. I¡¯m here to deliver the food at the requested time. Sorry to bother you this early in the morning, Ms. Hunt.¡± Serenity wondered when Zachary found the time to order breakfast from Mr. Zen as she was with him the whole night. Zachary often got Wiltspoon Hotel to do the delivery too. Although Zachary enjoyed discounts at the hotel as an employee of York Corporation, he should not pour all his money into the ce. Serenity kept a smile on the surface as she opened the gate and thanked Mr. Zen. She took the breakfast and asked, ¡°How much is it, Mr. Zen? I¡¯ll pay.¡± Zachary mentioned that he only paid the deposit and had a mortgage to pay for the vi. Even though Zacharyter saved more money, he went on to buy a house in Brynfield. He probably did not have much money left in the bank. Yet, he squandered money on breakfast from Wiltspoon Hotel. Serenity would often grab him to¨Cgo breakfast from stores or cook for him in the past. ¡°Mr. York will pay for it.¡± Mr. Zen could not possibly let Serenity make payment. ¡°Mr. York is my husband. We¡¯re family. His money is my money. It doesn¡¯t make a difference who pays. You know me, Mr. Zen. Tell me. How much is it? I¡¯ll pay. I won¡¯t ask for a big discount.¡± Seeing that Serenity insisted, Mr. Zen mentioned a number. Well, it should cover the price of the breakfast. He kept the price not too high and not too low. The price was just right. ¡°I don¡¯t have cash. Can I do Apple pay?¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Mr. Zen answered, ¡°Sure.¡± He pulled up a portable machine from his pocket that epted cards and Apple pay. It was a good thing he came prepared. Mr. Zen brought the payment device along in case Mr. York did not get up early because the missus would ask about payment if she came out to collect the food. Serenity tapped her phone on the device and thanked Mr. Zen before carrying breakfast made by the chef of Wiltspoon Hotel into the house. She waltzed into the house to find Zachary descending the stairs. ¡°You¡¯re up.¡± Serenity went to the dining room and put down the breakfast delivery on the dinner table. Turning on her heel, she entered the kitchen and brought out the tes and cutleries. She set the food up on the te, so they did not need to eat straight out of the disposable containers. ¡°Let me know what you fancy for breakfast next time. I usually get up around this time. I can cook for you. It¡¯s expensive to get food deliveries from the Wiltspoon Hotel.¡± Zachary was buttoning his cuffs as Serenity nagged. He approached her and locked her in his arms. After stealing a kiss, he tenderly uttered, ¡°I don¡¯t want the work to wear you out, so I ordered breakfast. You like the breakfast there. It¡¯s expensive, but it¡¯s worth it to see you relishing the food.¡± ¡°I know you¡¯re on a high ie, but you have a mortgage. Besides, you wire me a lot of money for household expenses. We don¡¯t have children yet, so there¡¯s no need to give me so much. You have expensive taste too. Sure, you get what you pay, but we should save some money.¡± Chapter 712 Chapter 712 hapter 712 Since no children were in the picture yet, the couple could enjoy the finer things in life. The expenses would be costly when the family grew. It would take a lot of money to raise children. ¡°I have an ie, and I¡¯m part of the family. I¡¯ll pay for some of the household expenses. Save some money and clear the mortgage early if you can. At least then. you¡¯ll have spare cash once the house loan is out of the way.¡± Serenity did not propose chipping in on the mortgage. Zachary bought the vi before they were married, and he was still paying the mortgage like Hank. Even though Serenity and Zachary were no longer married in name and could not be in a better ce in their marriage, Serenity did not want to end up on the same path as her sister. It was his house, and she would not covet it nor help with the mortgage. What if she and Zachary were not meant to be? The divorce would be ugly with the division of assets and quarrels. It was better to keep their assets apart right from the start. Propping his chin on her shoulder, Zachary affectionately said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about the mortgage, Seren. Although I don¡¯t have a lot in savings, I can manage the payments. Besides, New Year ising. I¡¯ll get a year¨Cend bonus. The bonus is pretty good for senior executives. I ¡°I told you when I married you that I will provide for you. I won¡¯t go halves with you. ¡°Although I¡¯m still paying for the vi, I put down a hefty sum for the down payment. The mortgage fee isn¡¯t too bad. Don¡¯t forget that your husband makes millions a year.¡± Serenity pried open his hand over her and turned around to face him squarely. She said, ¡°So long as you know what you¡¯re doing.¡± Being in the high¨Cie bracket, Zachary was used to dining at high¨Cend restaurants and paying the premium price for things. She had pointed it out to him. It was not her ce to speak more on the matter if he did not want to listen. ¡°I¡¯m going back to our house in Brynfield when you get to workter. I¡¯m more While the environment here was better, the vi was far from the ces she hung out. With a smile, Zachary replied, ¡°Both ces are our home. We can live in Brynfield if you prefer there. We can take short breaks over the weekend or festive holidays. here.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Serenity answered. It was a waste to get a vi if it was only for a short stay. Zachary probably would not buy a property in Brynfield if it were not for their whirlwind marriage. Ultimately, he kept the vi from her because he suspected that she was a conniving gold digger. Zachary thought twice before letting her know that he brought home millions in ie. Serenity had not once asked about his sry since they tied the knot. ¡°What are your ns today?¡± Zachary drew a chair back for her to sit down. He then took a seat next to her. ¡°I¡¯m on my leave now. I don¡¯t have much to do other than my crafts, but I intend to visit my sister¡¯s rented shop to see what I can do to help.¡± Zachary nodded. ¡°Jasmine and I are checking out an Italian ce tonight.¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯m not free tonight.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t say I¡¯m taking you.¡± Zachary was lost for words. ¡°Jasmine and I agreed that it¡¯ll only be the two of us. We can eat to our hearts¡® content. She said she¡¯s been tagging along to Drake¡¯s dinner appointments while I wasn¡¯t around. She didn¡¯t have enough to eat.¡± Zachary buried his head in his breakfast. It got nothing to do with him anyway. Chapter 713 Chapter 713 Chapter 713 ¡°It¡¯s mypany¡¯s annual dinner in a few days. I¡¯ll get an invitation for you. You need a gown for the event. I cane back and pick you up, or you can drive there. ¡°Why should I go to yourpany¡¯s annual dinner? I¡¯m not an employee.¡± Serenity was not keen on attending social events. The only reason she would ever go was for the food. Nevertheless, as Jasmine said, Serenity would have to curb her eating if she was there as Zachary¡¯s plus¨Cone. Serenity would rather check out new eateries with Jasmine.. ¡°We can bring a family member to thepany¡¯s annual dinner. Others would bring theirs, so why can¡¯t I?¡± Serenity had no words as she stared at Zachary. ¡°I¡¯ll be helping out a little at the dinner. It might be a littleter if you want me to pick you up. I¡¯lle straight after I¡¯m done.¡± ¡°Alright. Let me know on that day itself. I¡¯ll head over myself, so you don¡¯t have to rush back. You can come out to bring me in when I reach your office. You can¡¯t expect me to enter the event like a deer in headlights.¡± Relieved, Zachary replied, ¡°Of course. Ms. Stone will probably be attending too. Mr. Bucham doesn¡¯t have a girlfriend, but he¡¯s interested in Ms. Sox. It¡¯s likely he¡¯d invite Ms. Sox to be his plus¨Cone.¡± In the past, Zachary would usually give his speech at thepany¡¯s annual dinner and leave right after. The employees would not be able to let loose and enjoy themselves with him there. As the life of the party, Josh would party with everybody until it was over. Many female employees would try to partner with Josh for thepany¡¯s annual dinner, hoping Josh could see their beauty and assets and fall in love with them. Although Josh was gentler, chattier, and easier to get along withpared to Zachary, he did not enjoy being attacked by a pack of hungry female employees. Subsequently, Josh would hire a young woman in his family to be his plus¨Cone for thepany¡¯s annual dinner to ward off the female employees¡® enthusiastic pursuit. Now that Jasmine was around, Josh was likely to ask her to be his plus¨Cone. Serenity wanted to give her two cents that Jasmine might not agree to go with Josh. but decided to bite her tongue. She was not Jasmine, so she could not make the decision for her. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. After breakfast, Zachary drove Serenity back to Brynfield before rushing to work. Serenity got back home and asked Mrs. Lane to get ready because they were going to Liberty¡¯s ce. s, Liberty was not there. She had gone to the shop first thing in the morning. Serenity then drove to her sister¡¯s shop. Renovations had not started on Liberty¡¯s shop as the workers were mostly off for the holidays. Liberty had basically bought the material needed, so there was no need for her to Time went by faster when she was busy. Sitting behind the table in the shop, Liberty kept herself busy while Sonny ran around in the shop. A ss door was installed at the entrance. Since the door was heavy and closed, Sonny did not have the strength to push it open. Hence, it was safe for him to race around the ce. ¡°Mom. Mom.¡± Sonny, who was happily entertaining himself, dropped his toy in horror when he saw Duncan approaching. Turning around, he ran to Liberty and called for his mother. He appeared scared. ¡°Why are you so afraid of me, Sonny?¡± Duncan held a pinwheel in his hand. It was a gift for Sonny. It was awkward for Duncan to scare the little guy until he went crying to his mother. Was the scar on his face that frightening? ¡°What brings you here, Mr. Lewis?¡± Liberty asked with a smile as she picked Sonny 1. up. ¡°I pass by this ce every day. I always see your shop open, so I thought I shoulde in for a look.¡± Chapter 714 Chapter 714 Chapter 714 Duncan went and gave the pinwheel to Sonny. Sonny refused to take the pinwheel from him. ¡°Mr. Lewis, Sonny has a lot of toys already.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not much. I was passing by a toy store and thought the pinwheel at the entrance was nice. I bought him one since the wind¡¯s strong today, and he¡¯d probably enjoy it.¡± He dropped by to give Sonny the pinwheel. Otherwise, Duncan would not havee 1. in. Handing the pinwheel to Liberty, Duncan said, ¡°Hold it for Sonny.¡± Since the pinwheel did not cost a lot, Liberty epted the gift and thanked Duncan on behalf of Sonny before handing the pinwheel to her son. Sonny took the pinwheel. Duncan said hesitantly, ¡°Sonny¡¯s scared of me. I gave him the pinwheel, but he didn¡¯t want it. He took it the moment you gave it to him.¡± Serenity replied amid chuckles, ¡°I¡¯m his mother. I have been with him since he was in my womb till today, so I¡¯m his closest person.¡± Duncanughed in delight. ¡°Sorry, that came out wrong.¡± Looking around the shop, he remarked, ¡°Youe here every day. What are you busy with?¡± The ce looked spotless. However, the shop would be turned upside down anyway when the renovation started next year. ¡°I bought materials for the renovations. I just tinkled around here, and that¡¯s a day well spent.¡± In other words, she was just passing the time. ¡°I see.¡± With his gaze falling on Liberty, Duncan teased, ¡°You¡¯re losing weight faster than when I first asked you to run five rounds at the office.¡± ¡°I still run every day, but I put myself on a strict diet, so no sugar and fats for me. I don¡¯t have full meals either. My weight is dropping now. I lost twenty pounds since I asked Hank for a divorce.¡± Duncan believed Liberty looked nicer now that she had shed twenty pounds. With her height, Liberty needed to drop another eighty pounds to reach the rmended weight. ¡°That¡¯s good. Keep it up.¡± Liberty smiled. It hit her that she bought some fruits and kept them in the shop. She asked, ¡°Would you like some fruits? I bought them today. Let me get you some.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay. I¡¯m off to a meeting. I should leave you to your work.¡± Seeing that Sonny had good fun with the pinwheel, Duncan swiftly gave Sonny a squeeze on the cheek. By the time Sonny realized it, Duncan had withdrawn his arm. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Sonny sulkily red at him. Mr. Lewis snuck up on him. ¡°Sonny, Mr. Lewis is going to work. Say bye¨Cbye.¡± With the sneak attack a sess, Duncan happily said goodbye to Sonny. Sonny reluctantly waved his arm in response to Duncan¡¯s friendly goodbye as his mother insisted. While exiting Liberty¡¯s shop, Duncan ran into Mrs. Brown who had just gotten out of the car. Through the ss window, Mrs. Brown saw Duncan stroking Sonny¡¯s face. He waved and bade Liberty and her son goodbye before leaving the shop. Mrs. Brown put her guard up at the sight of Duncan. Was this man not the boss of Liberty¡¯s previous workce? Was he pursuing Liberty? Mrs. Brown could not believe that a divorced woman like Liberty was desirable. Nevertheless, Mrs. Brown thought she had it figured out when she saw the scar on Duncan¡¯s face. The man had trouble in the marriage department because of his disfigured looks. Since young, beautiful, and single women would not want to marry him, the man must be setting his sights on a divorced woman like Liberty. Chapter 715 Chapter 715 Chapter 715 Even so, Mrs. Brown did not like it one bit. Duncan was the boss of apany. Although his face was ruined, the man was loaded. Mrs. Brown and her daughter stood in front of Lewis & Co.¡¯s office building the whole morning while waiting for Liberty back then. She heard from her son that Lewis & Co. was one of the biggest corporations in Wiltspoon and a more influentialpany than the ce her son was working at. Her son mentioned that he himself might not pass the interview and be a senior executive at Lewis & Co. It did not sit well with Hank that Liberty was employed by Lewis & Co. as he realized Liberty could get back on track to a sessful career when she returned to the workce. It was a good thing that the couple was divorced now. Hank did not have to worry about being overshadowed by his wife. Since Jessica was his secretary and she relied heavily on him, it fed his ego as a man. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Having recognized Mrs. Brown, Duncan stopped in his tracks and shot a re at Mrs. Brown. He curtly questioned, ¡°Why are you here?¡± He cocked his head to the mother and son inside the shop before giving Mrs. Brown a stern warning. ¡°I rent the shop to Liberty. I won¡¯t y nice if you stir up trouble here. It¡¯s not going to end with just compensation.¡± Mrs. Brown retorted with more questions, ¡°What are you doing here? Are you trying to chase my daughter¨Cinw?¡± ¡°I own half themercial spaces on this street. You can call me Liberty¡¯sndlord. It¡¯s none of your business what I do here. Why do I recall that Liberty and your son are divorced? What? Didn¡¯t he marry his mistress? ¡°You should be rushing them to get married. That way, you have a new daughter¨Cin-w. Liberty has nothing to do with the Browns anymore. Stop calling her your daughter¨Cinw.¡± Mrs. Brown choked. Thest thing she wanted was for her son to marry Jessica. However, her son would not listen to her and instead had a date picked to get a marriage license with Jessica. Jessica¡¯s parents, brother, and sister¨Cinw came today, asking both families to meet and discuss the wedding over a meal. Mrs. Brown felt the pinch for her son at the thought of the Yates familying to talk about contributing to the wedding and family support. Liberty got so much money from the divorce. At least, Liberty gave Mrs. Brown a grandson. Sure, Liberty had the money, but she would use most of it on her grandson. After much deliberation and advice from her husband, Mrs. Brown epted the fact. What more could she do? The money was already in Serenity¡¯s bank ount. Nevertheless, Jessica had yet to carry the Browns¡® bloodline in her, and she stole someone else¡¯s husband. Her son somehow wanted to give her and her family a sum of money and pay for the wedding. It was a hard pill for Mrs. Brown to swallow. That was why she ended up here to look for Liberty. She stalked Liberty and knew thetter rented a shop here to start a business. Mrs. Brown had not figured out what sort of business Liberty was going to venture into. ¡°How does she have nothing to do with the Browns? Sonny is my grandson, and Liberty¡¯s my grandson¡¯s mother. How are we not rted?¡± Duncan frowned. ¡°What on earth do you want?¡± Straightening her back, Mrs. Brown righteously uttered, ¡°I¡¯m here to see my grandson. Liberty said during the divorce that we can visit Sonny anytime we want. What? Is this a problem for you?¡± Duncan was speechless. Mrs. Brown grabbed her purse and walked past Duncan with her chest out. She added. ¡°My son will get back together with Liberty. You stand no chance.¡± Duncan wanted tough. It was not like he was after Liberty. Duncan was fond of the little man and brought him a pinwheel. How did it turn into him pursuing Liberty and standing no chance? Liberty would never get back together with a dirtbag like Hank even if Hank wanted to rekindle the rtionship. It was Hank who stood no more chance. Duncan turned his head and watched Mrs. Brown open the ss door and enter the shop. A brief momentter, he chose to take off. He was not that close with Liberty. Duncan could care less unless Mrs. Brown was trying to raise hell. Chapter 716 Chapter 716 Chapter 716 ¡°Sonny.¡± Mrs. Brown entered the shop smiling and pulled up a toy car from her purse. She said to Sonny, ¡°Look, Sonny. I bought you a toy.¡± ¡°Grandma.¡± Sonny had no idea what happened among the adults, so he would still acknowledge his grandparents¡® and father¡¯s presence. Liberty held grudges against the Browns, but she was ready to move on after the divorce. So long as the Browns stayed out of her business, Liberty could keep her cool when meeting her ex¨Chusband¡¯s family. She never spoke ill about her ex¨Chusband¡¯s family while Sonny was around. No matter what, Hank was Sonny¡¯s father. Liberty put Sonny down. Mrs. Brown crouched to get to Sonny¡¯s eye level. She handed the toy car to Sonny in exchange for the pinwheel which was a gift from Duncan. Call it her killer instinct but she had the feeling that Duncan was trying to get to Liberty through Sonny. For a divorced single mother to find a second chance in love, the most important thing was to see whether the man was willing to ept her child. Would the man see the child as his own? Sonny was the grandson of the Brown family. There was no way he could call Duncan his father. ¡°I want this.¡± Sonny did not care for the toy car Grandma gave him as he owned many of the same. Aunt Elisa had given him so much that he had not gone through all the toys. He preferred the pinwheel from Mr. Lewis. It looked nice. Sonny grabbed the pinwheel back. ¡°What¡¯s fun about a pinwheel? Sonny, I can take you to get a new one if you like pinwheels. Just throw this one away.¡± Mrs. Brown tried to take the pinwheel away, but Sonny refused and pouted his lips, a look he made when he was about to cry. In the end, Mrs. Brown gave up on getting rid of the pinwheel. She was displeased with Duncan¡¯s shameless effort to steal her darling grandson¡¯s heart with a measly pinwheel. Picking Sonny up, Mrs. Brown rose to her feet and asked, ¡°Did your bosse by just now, Liberty? Is he pursuing you?¡± Liberty gave Mrs. Brown a look as if thetter was joking before faintly replying, ¡°Mr. Lewis dropped by to give Sonny the pinwheel. Why do you think that? Besides, it¡¯s my personal business and that has nothing to do with you.¡± Mrs. Brown grinned awkwardly. ¡°I was just asking. Fine, if he¡¯s not. You¡¯re a divorcee with a son. Who¡¯s going to raise someone else¡¯s child? Liberty, be careful of anyone who wants to pursue a romantic rtionship with you. They¡¯re just trying to trick you and get money out of you. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°You¡¯re a millionaire now.¡± It was her son¡¯s money. Liberty turned away to keep her hands busy and said, ¡°I said it¡¯s my personal business, and it¡¯s none of your concern. You should be fussing over your son and Ms. Yates¡® wedding if you don¡¯t have anything to do.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t bring up that woman. She makes me mad.¡± Mrs. Brown somehow started toin about Jessica to her former daughter¨Cin- ¡°What¡¯s the point of being young and beautiful? She¡¯s extravagant with her spending. I doubt her sry can keep up with her spending, so my son is footing all the bills. ¡°There are so many expenses involved with the wedding. The house needs renovation, and still, she demands Hank to pay for the wedding and her family support. Hank said that the Yates are asking for at least three hundred and eighty thousand dors and jewelry. Hasn¡¯t Hank given her enough gifts in the past?¡± Chapter 717 Chapter 717 Chapter 717 ¡®Jessica wants the reception to be at Wiltspoon Hotel. How much is that going to cost? We¡¯re paying for the reception. Instead of marrying for love, Hank is marrying. himself into debt.¡± Mrs. Brown whined, ¡°It¡¯s not like she cany a golden egg.¡± Liberty grabbed a cloth and wiped the table. All the while, she listened to whatever Mrs. Brown had to say without giving her two cents. Her former mother¨Cinw came to her to vent about Jessica because thetter was demanding and did not hold back on splurging. If Jessica was foolish like Liberty for paying for the renovations and refusing the Browns to pay for the wedding and family support, her ex¨Cmother¨Cinw would probably brag about Hank marrying someone younger and more beautiful right after the divorce. Mrs. Brown wouldugh at her for being fat and ugly. No one would want Liberty after she left Hank. ¡°Liberty, have you been thrifty and skipping mealstely? You seem to have lost a lot of weight.¡± ¡°Mrs. Brown, I¡¯m no longer married to your son. You¡¯re not my mother¨Cinw anymore, so you don¡¯t need to show me concern,¡± Liberty retorted, not in the mood for a conversation with Mrs. Brown. Mrs. Brownughed awkwardly. ¡°I¡¯m used to it. It¡¯ll take some time to kick the habit. Don¡¯t be too thrifty. You can put the money from Hank in the bank to get the interest, but you lost a lot of weight. Sonny¡¯s heavier. It¡¯s getting harder to carry him. ¡°Liberty, your aunt¡­ I mean, is your aunt financially supporting you to set up the shop? Your aunt is wealthy and can offer you better help than we could.¡± Mrs. Brown came here today because she missed her grandson, besides finding favor with Liberty and finding out how much help Mrs. Stone was giving to Liberty and her sister. Would the family get anything if her son rekindled his marriage with Liberty? Hank had been whining about the work stresstely. Someone was out to get him. and undermine him at work. Hank¡¯s boss was picking on every mistake to the point Hank was worried he might not be able to keep his job. He nned to hand in his resignation when he married Jessica the following year. He would look for another job after his honeymoon. Stone Group was only second to York Corporation. It would be great if her son could get a job at Stone Group. ¡°I am able and have the startup cash. Why do I need my aunt to finance me?¡± That was all it took to shut Mrs. Brown up. It took a while before Mrs. Brown found her voice again. ¡°That¡¯s foolish of you, Liberty. Your aunt had been looking for your mom for decades. You¡¯re her only surviving rtives since your mom is gone. Your aunt is rich. She¡¯ll be d to help you financially now that she has you in the family. ¡°This is a chance of a lifetime. I can¡¯t believe you didn¡¯t ask your aunt for help.¡± Liberty stopped wiping the table and faintly replied, ¡°My aunt wanted to give a vi with a front and back garden to me and Seren each. She also proposed to give us a lump sum of money to start a business.¡± Mrs. Brown beamed. ¡°I told you your aunt won¡¯t give you anything less.¡± ¡°We turned down the kind gesture. We don¡¯t want our aunt¡¯s money. We¡¯ll buy a house with our own means, and if we can¡¯t, we can just rent.¡± Mrs. Brown was speechless. Liberty was a fool! An utter fool! How could Liberty say no to a free vi? Yet, Liberty wanted a piece of her son¡¯s two¨Cmillion¨Cdor assets. ¡°Liberty. Sonny.¡± Serenity and Mrs. Lane pushed the door and entered the shop. Seeing that Mrs. Brown was here, Serenity put away her smile and came at the olddy while rolling up her sleeves. Serenity questioned Mrs. Brown, ¡°What are you doing here? I¡¯m warning you. I¡¯ll break your arm if youe here for trouble.¡± ¡°I¡¯m here to see Sonny, Serenity. I¡¯m not here for trouble.¡± Mrs. Brown knew that Serenity was adept in the art of self¨Cdefense, and she was not afraid to turn violent due to her resentment toward the Browns. Mrs. Brown wasted no time exining herself. ¡°You can ask your sister if you don¡¯t believe me. I came to visit Sonny and even brought Sonny a new toy.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Mrs. Brown remarked as she handed Sonny to Serenity. She uttered, ¡°I¡¯ve been here long enough. I should head back.¡± Chapter 718 Chapter 718 Chapter 718 ¡°Liberty, I got to go. I¡¯ll visit you and Sonny some other time.¡± Mrs. Brown left these words before making the run for it. Serenity carried Sonny out the door as they watched Mrs. Brown get into a taxi. Serenity clicked her tongue once it was confirmed that the olddy had left the building. She shot off. ¡°She¡¯s never been so eager to see Sonny before, so why change now?¡± Sonny was holding the toy car that Mrs. Brown stuffed in his hands before leaving. Taking the toy car from Sonny, Serenity asked, ¡°Do you like the toy car, Sonny?¡± ¡°No.¡± Shaking his head, Sonny replied, ¡°I have a lot of toy cars.¡± All of them could move whereas the toy car that Grandma gave him could not. ¡°Why don¡¯t we throw it away?¡± After much thought, Sonny answered, ¡°For Lucas.¡± He believed Lucas would not go after his toys if he had his own toy car. ¡°Sonny, Lucas will never fight with you over your toys anymore. If you don¡¯t want to throw the toy car away, we can give it away to other children but not to Lucas.¡± ¡°Um¡­ I want to give it to Jenny.¡± Serenity carried her nephew into the shop and asked her sister, ¡°Who¡¯s Jenny, Liberty?¡± ¡°My neighbor¡¯s little girl. She has y dates with Sonny.¡± Serenity put the toy car from Mrs. Brown on the table. ¡°Sonny said that the toy car is for Jenny.¡± Liberty would not make the decisions for her son. Since Sonny did not like the toy car given by his grandma and did not want to throw it away, Jenny could have it. It did not matter to Liberty. Her son had a pile of toys at home anyway. Elisa was generous, showering Sonny with toys every time she dropped by. Elisa doted on Sonny. Afraid that everybody might spoil Sonny too much, Liberty became stricter at raising him. ¡°Liberty, what did the old hag want?¡± Serenity did not buy it that Mrs. Brown was here to see Sonny. Liberty smiled sarcastically, ¡°Do you think her story about visiting Sonny was legit? She came to whine about Hank and Jessica¡¯s wedding. The family has to pay for the wedding, family support, and jewelry for the bride. It¡¯s always about money.¡± ¡°They deserve it. Jessica better steps it up and spends all of the Browns¡® money. Liberty was considerate of the family and never demanded anything excessive. The only thing she asked for was for Serenity to live together with her. What did Liberty get in return for her understanding? Betrayal. ¡°I hope for a lot of drama in the Brown family. I hope Hank and Jessica¡¯s wedding will be ruined. Liberty, find a better man to marry. The happiness and sess of your next marriage will be the best revenge on them yet. ¡°I can let Zachary¡¯s nana and Aunt Audrey know if you¡¯re looking for a second chance in love, Liberty. They¡¯ve been there. They know a good man when they see one. They can check out the man for you.¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Liberty remarked, ¡°Another marriage is not on the table.¡± All she could think of now was to make money to buy a car and a house. She would be happy if she could raise her son well to get into a good college and find a good job. Chapter 719 Chapter 719 Chapter 719 Serenity said, ¡°I understand that another marriage isn¡¯t on the table now, but I¡¯m speaking in terms of the future. You¡¯re young, Liberty. Are you nning to be single for the rest of your life?¡± ¡°Why not? I think I¡¯m doing fine. I don¡¯t need to wait on my inws hand and foot or deal with any issue with a mother¨Cinw and a sister¨Cinw. I can do whatever I want and spend on whatever I want. I feel free. ¡± Thanks to her newfound freedom, it dawned on Liberty why more and more women did not want to take the marriage route. Serenity was speechless. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about me, Seren. My life can¡¯t be better. Don¡¯t you think I¡¯m happier now that I¡¯m divorced?¡± Serenity nodded her head. ¡°Don¡¯t you wish I¡¯ll always be happy?¡± ¡°Of course. ¡± ¡°Don¡¯t bring up the possibility of a second marriage. I just escaped from hell, but Seren, this shouldn¡¯t be a reason for you to be afraid of marriage. Yours is different from mine. Zachary seems like a reliable guy. There was no guarantee that people would not change down the road. ¡°Has Zachary gone to work?¡± ¡°Yes. ¡± Liberty grabbed a wrap to strap her son on her bag while speaking, ¡°Remind Zachary to put onyers when the weather is cold. Don¡¯t let him work too hard. Health is most important, and the restes second. ¡± ¡°He¡¯s a grown¨Cup. He should know how to take care of himself. He must have gotten the flu from overworking himself. Stress doesn¡¯t go well with building body immunity. The viral flues around this time of the year. ¡± Serenity did not have the guts to say that Zachary got a cold from taking cold showers and that the cold showers were because of her. ¡°Where are you carrying Sonny, Liberty? Mrs. Lane and I can watch Sonny here. You can go and get the stuff you need, or should I drive you instead?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t need to get anything more for the shop for now. I was thinking of going to the market to get some spices to make my own sauce. I can use it when I¡¯m open for business. ¡°And appetizers. I wonder if I should get them store¨Cbought or make my own. ¡± Assisting her sister in strapping Sonny on her back, Serenity uttered, ¡°It¡¯ll be troublesome to make them all on your own. You should buy the ready¨Cmade from the store but get the trusted brand. They might be expensive. Breakfast can give you small profits and quick returns, so you should watch the costs. ¡°I¡¯ll go with you to the market, Liberty. ¡± Liberty did not refuse. With Mrs. Lane in tow, the sisters went to the market and bought a lot of spices. They then returned to Liberty¡¯s rented apartment. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Liberty started making condiments and appetizers to use for business after New Year. ¡°I want to talk to you about something, Liberty. ¡± ¡°Do tell. ¡± Lifting her head, Liberty nced at her sister and went back to her work preparations. ¡°Zachary kept something from me. ¡± Joining Sonny in his y time, Mrs. Lane overheard the conversation and looked over. She thought to herself, ¡®Did Mr. Zacharye clean to the missus about everything?¡® Liberty stopped what she was doing and asked her sister, ¡°What did Zachary hide from you? Get his side of the story if it¡¯s something important. You don¡¯t have to start a fight. Everybody has their own secrets. Even married couples don¡¯t share about every single thing. Chapter 720 Chapter 720 Chapter 720 ¡°Zachary owns a vi in a high¨Cend residential area. The vi is huge with a front and back garden. The view is breathtaking. I did my research and found the price of the vis starting from ten million dors.¡± Liberty was speechless. ¡°Zachary said he makes millions in annual ie and doesn¡¯t have big spending. He saved quite a bit of money to buy the vi, but it¡¯s still on a mortgage.¡± ¡°How much does he have to pay for his mortgage?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t ask. It¡¯s his house. The mortgage is his business. I won¡¯t demand a share of his house if we end up separating.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t jinx yourself. What do you mean separate? Your marriage has only begun. You should invest in your rtionship. Don¡¯t be like me.¡± Liberty wanted nothing about a divorceing from her sister¡¯s mouth. Since she failed in her marriage, she hoped her sister had a better chance at spending the rest of her life with Zachary. ¡°It¡¯s right for you to think so. His house is his unless he offers to put you in the title deed. We shouldn¡¯t expect things that aren¡¯t ours. Did you have a fight over this?¡± By now, Mrs. Lane knew that Mr. Zachary backed out and had not beenpletely honest about who he was. All he did was let the missus know that he had a vi under his name and even told her a new lie. Mrs. Lane was anxious for Zachary. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Zachary was not one to flinch in anything he did, but he could not seem to find the courage to be truthful to Serenity. So what if he was the richest heir? It was understandable why Zachary wanted his identity kept a secret then. Mrs. Lane was on pins and needles for Zachary¡¯s sake. Although Zachary was a bit of a coward in handling this, Mrs. Lane knew it was not her ce to jump into the conversation. ¡°I was angry when I first found out. I felt like he kept his guard up with me, but Iter could see his point of view. He told me he has a vi and wanted me to stay there, so I did. I won¡¯t go if he doesn¡¯t want me there. There¡¯s no point butting heads over this. ¡°Besides, for him to talk to me about it, it means he trusts mepletely now¡± Judging by Zachary¡¯s ie, it made sense why he could afford a vi. It was on a mortgage anyway. Liberty was a little unhappy for her sister because her brother¨Cinw was distrustful of her sister. Nevertheless, her sister did not mind it anymore. Liberty said, ¡°It¡¯s amazing how a different point of view lets us see things differently. No point in splitting hairs. Apart from the vi, is there anything else he¡¯s hiding from you?¡± ¡°Who knows? We¡¯ll never know what¡¯s going on in the minds of men.¡± After much thought, Liberty probed, ¡°Seren, have you ever suspected if Zachary is who he says he is?¡± Mrs. Lane¡¯s heart dropped. Dumbstruck, Serenity inquired, ¡°Do you mean if I think Zachary is not a sryman? The wealthiest family in Wiltspoon is the York family. There are many people with the samest name working in York Corporation, but they are not rted to the wealthiest Yorks.¡± Serenity added with a smile, ¡°Do you think Zachary looks like he¡¯s the heir of the wealthiest Yorks? A senior executive of York Corporation takes home millions of dors in annual ie. It¡¯s not strange that they can afford a vi.¡± Liberty had a feeling that her brother¨Cinw would have more to hide if he could keep his ownership of a vi from her sister. She never once suspected that her brother¨Cinw and the heir of the Yorks were the same people even though they shared the samest name. Liberty believed it would not be easy to marry into the wealthiest family of Wiltspoon, and the heir could not possibly marry her sister. Although her sister was the best to Liberty, the sisters were not born into privilege. It was all about social standing when it came to the marriage of the rich and powerful. The Cindere story was nothing but a fairytale. Hence, Liberty never questioned her brother¨Cinw¡¯s identity. It was mainly because she had met her brother¨Cinw¡¯s family. The Yorks were the nicest and friendliest bunch. They dressed like everyday people without adorning labels and jewelry. Chapter 721 Chapter 721 Chapter 721 ¡°Zachary¡¯s back from the business trip. You can take him to meet Aunt Audrey when you have time.¡± Liberty changed the subject. Liberty had no way to tell whether Zachary was rted to the richest family in Wiltspoon, but their aunt was the wife of Stone Group¡¯s chairman, so she must have seen the York brothers before. If Serenity took Zachary to see their aunt, they would know whether Zachary deceived Serenity about his identity. Mrs. Lane was listening on the side and thought she should remind Zachary when he got home at night. It would be better for him to confess to Serenity as soon as possible. ¡°Zachary said he won¡¯t be free until after New Year. He¡¯s been very busy recently, and hispany is holding an annual dinner soon.¡± ¡°Does hispany allow employees to bring their family members to the annual dinner? Did Zachary say that he¡¯ll take you?¡± Serenity had never worked in corporate before, but Liberty did and was familiar with the culture. Liberty thought that if Zachary dared bring Serenity to the annual dinner, then she was probably just overthinking Zachary¡¯s identity. Zachary might really be unrted to the richest family in Wiltspoon. ¡°Yup. He said that he¡¯d give me an invitation to hispany¡¯s annual dinner.¡± Liberty felt relieved when her sister said this. She might really be overthinking it. The boss had to show up at thepany¡¯s annual dinner. The current person in charge of York Corporation was the eldest son of the York family and the man that Elisa was infatuated with for many years. Serenity would know whether Zachary was rted to the York family when the head of York Corporation showed up at the dinner. After all, Serenity had already met Zachary¡¯s younger brothers. All of the York brothers showed up to help when Sonny was taken that time. Liberty thought to herself, ¡®If Zachary dares let Serenity attend hispany¡¯s annual dinner, he¡¯s probably not hiding his identity from her.¡® After checking the time, Serenity said to her sister, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯lle over for lunchter. I¡¯ll go to Zachary¡¯s office now and wait for him to get off work.¡± Serenity was not manning her store today, so she had more time to be with Zachary. Liberty smiled and said, ¡°Go ahead. I¡¯ve already bought your favorite dishes.¡± Serenity picked up her car keys and said to her nephew, ¡°Sonny, do you want toe with Ant Swer to pick up Uncle Zack?¡± ¡°Yes!¡± Sonny had gotten over his trauma and returned to normal. Besides his mother, Sonny liked to cling to his aunt the most. Serenity stepped forward to pick Sonny up and said to Mrs. Lane, ¡°I¡¯ll take Sonny with me and pick Zachary up from work. Mrs. Lane, can you help my sister cook lunch?¡± Mrs. Lane said with a gentle smile, ¡°Sure, Ms. Hunt. Go ahead. I assure you that you and Mr. York will be able to eat a hot meal by the time youe back.¡± Zachary must be delighted to know that his wife was going to pick him up from work again. Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity took Sonny with her. After arriving at York Corporation, Serenity saw Elisa at the milk tea shop diagonally opposite the office¡¯s entrance. She spotted Elisa¡¯s car first before she saw Elisa in the shop. Elisa also saw Serenity. She took the initiative toe out of the milk tea shop. ¡°Serenity!¡± Elisa stood at the store entrance as she smiled and waved at Serenity. When Serenity got out of the car with Sonny in her arms, Elisa looked even happier. She walked over and took Sonny from Serenity¡¯s arms. She kissed the little guy a few times and asked him, ¡°Sonny, did you miss me?¡± Sonny responded in a baby voice, ¡°I miss you, Ant Elisa.¡± He then leaned over and kissed Elisa back, just like how she kissed his little face. Elisa was overjoyed. ¡°Elisa, what are you doing here?¡± Chapter 722 Chapter 722 Chapter 722 Serenity understood that it would take a while for Elisa to let go of her feelings for Mr. York. Elisa had not pestered Mr. York for a long time. She was probably here now. because she wanted to secretly take a look at Mr. York. It must be painful for Elisa to fall in love with someone who did not love her back. ¡± ¡°I¡¯ve had the milk tea here a few times before, and I think the milk tea and desserts in this store are quite nice, so I came here to try them again. But now, I just find therm average. ¡± Elisa said it very naturally as if she actually came here just to drink milk tea. She had indeed tried the milk tea from the same shop before and thought it was delicious. Maybe because back then, it was worth the wait. Now, she found it mediocre because she no longer had someone to wait for. ¡°Are you here to wait for your husband to get off work? Since he¡¯s back from his business trip, when will you bring him to my house?¡± ¡°Probably after New Year. He¡¯s very busy now and can¡¯t spare any time to visit. ¡± Elisa nodded in understanding. She said, ¡°Would you like to go in and have a cup of milk tea?¡± ¡°No, I won¡¯t be able to eat lunchter if I drink milk tea now, then Liberty will start nagging me for wasting food. ¡± Elisa smiled and said, ¡°Is Liberty doing well right now? My mother wants to help you. both, but you two refused, so she has no choice but to watch silently. ¡± The Hunt sisters were poor and ambitious. ¡°My sister and I are still young and capable enough to earn a living by our own. means. Aunt Audrey doesn¡¯t have to worry about us. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. She should worry about you and Anthony¡¯s marriage instead. ¡± Elisa smiled. ¡°My second brother is really sly. He doesn¡¯t want to get married so soon, and none of us can do anything about him. As for me¡­ Well, you know I can¡¯t forget about him for a while¡­¡± ¡°Elisa, you deserve better. ¡± Elisa said confidently, ¡°I think so too!¡± The twodies looked at each other and smiled. Clive had asked Serenity not to mention Zachary¡¯sst name in front of Elisa so as not to agitate her. Seeing that Elisa still came to the milk tea shop opposite York Corporation, Serenity finally understood Clive¡¯s love for his sister. Serenity and Zachary had a new breakthrough in their rtionship and were in love with each other, so it was not appropriate to show their affection in front of Elisa at this moment, lest they trigger her. At this time, York Corporation¡¯s main door opened. Both Serenity and Elisa instinctively looked toward the entrance of York Corporation and saw a convoy driving out. One of the car te numbers seemed rather familiar to Elisa. She quickly recalled where she had seen that number before. ¡°Seren, you can wait for your husband to get off work. I have something to do now. ¡± Elisa handed Sonny back to Serenity, turned around, and went into the store to pick up her car keys. When she came out again, she walked quickly toward her car and waved to Serenity as she got into the car. ¡°Bring your husband over for dinner someday!¡± She then drove away in a hurry. ¡°Those cars earlier belonged to Mr. York, right?¡± Serenity heard that Mr. York would always bring a group of bodyguards with him whenever he went out. His exclusive car was also surrounded by his bodyguards¡® cars. The cars that drove out of York Corporation just now befitted Mr. York¡¯s practice. On the contrary, that was not Zachary¡¯s convoy. It belonged to Remy Johnson, the fifth son of the Johnson family, who also brought a group of bodyguards with him wherever he went. Remy was about to return to Annenburg. Before going back, he was tasked by his elder brother to go to York Corporation to invite Zachary to attend his elder brother¡¯s wedding. That was why he showed up at York Corporation. Then, Elisa saw Remy¡¯s car. Elisa did not know it was Remy. She just wanted to find out who else, besides Zachary, had such fanfare in Wiltspoon. Chapter 723 Chapter 723 Chapter 723 Elisa sped off. She was originally behind Remy¡¯s convoy, but she stepped on the gas and quickly overtook him. Unexpectedly, her car stopped moving in two minutes. It was a t tire, so she had to make an emergency pullover to check her tire. How could her tire be leaking? When Elisa got out of the car, Remy, who was behind her, recognized her. Remy¡¯s driver also recognized Elisa. That was because he gave way to Elisast time, and the incident was memorable. ¡°Stop,¡± Remy ordered the driver to stop the car. The driver hurriedly pulled over and stopped right next to Elisa¡¯s car. Remy instructed the driver, ¡°Ask Ms. Stone what¡¯s wrong. ¡± He guessed Elisa was here because of Zachary. Remy lived in Wiltspoon for a long time, so he was aware that Elisa was chasing after Zachary. Since Zachary announced to his circle of friends that he was married, Elisa stopped pestering Zachary. They met again today. Remy thought, ¡®Zachary is so much like my elder brother. Even though they¡¯re married, they¡¯re still such chick mas. ¡± The driver heeded Remy¡¯s orders. He got out of the car, walked toward Elisa, and asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong with your car?¡± ¡°It¡¯s a t tire. I think I drove over something sharp. ¡± Elisa squatted in front of the t tire to examine it and found a sharp object stuck in the tire. ¡°Is it leaking profusely?¡± ¡°The tire is getting tter by the second, so it¡¯s definitely leaking. ¡± Elisa did not pull out the sharp object that was stuck in the tire. Instead, she stood up and took out her phone to call someone to help tow the car. After making a phone call, she walked to Remy¡¯s car window and tapped on it. Remy pulled the window curtain open. When he saw that it was Elisa, he got out of the car. Elisa was taken aback when she saw an unfamiliar face. It turned out that he was not someone in the elite circle that she was familiar with. No wonder she could not recognize whose car it was. ¡°Ms. Stone, is there anything I can do for you?¡± Remy asked Elisa gently. ¡°Thanks. My tire is punctured. I already called someone toe and tow the car. ¡°May I ask what¡¯s your name? I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve seen you around before. ¡± Remy smiled and replied, ¡°Myst name is Johnson. I¡¯m from Annenburg, but I work in Wiltspoon. I¡¯m usually very busy with work and rarely participate in social activities, so it¡¯s expected that you haven¡¯t seen me before. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡± After a pause, he added, ¡°But I see you around quite often, Ms. Stone. ¡± Elisa thought, ¡®The Johnsons from Annenburg?¡® Elisa asked him, ¡°Mr. Johnson, do you work for FC & Co. in Annenburg? What¡¯s your ranking in the Johnson family? ¡°FC & Co. is my family¡¯s business, and I¡¯m the fifth brother. ¡± Elisa thought, ¡®Oh, so he¡¯s the fifth son of the Johnson family. ¡®No wonder he has such big fanfare, like Zachary, and has sessfully aroused my curiosity. ¡® It made sense that Remy was the fifth son of the Johnson family. Among the Johnson brothers in Annenburg, Remy was the most ostentatious. He always brought a group of bodyguards to protect him wherever he went because he was the worst at martial artspared to his brothers. Chapter 724 Chapter 724 Chapter 724 FC & Co. and the York Corporation had in¨Cdepth cooperation. Elisa heard that Remy was in charge of FC & Co.¡¯s branch in Wiltspoon. No wonder Remy was at York Corporation. ¡°Mr. Johnson.¡± Elisa was the daughter of the Stone family and had heard of Annenburg¡¯s FC & Co. She knew that FC & Co. was the same as York Corporation and was a multi¨Cbillion. dor corporation. These two families were the richest people in their respective cities. Moreover, the Johnson family was just like the York family. Although they were rich, all family members got along well with each other and worked together. They were a truly harmonious and cohesive family. Elisa¡¯s mother often said that the York family could be the richest family and be at the top of the social hierarchy for so long because they had an excellent upbringing. The York children and grandchildren were well¨Ctrained to be amiable with each other. The York brothers would not turn against each other for personal interest and get along well. They were also unwilling to take over the family business. Zachary was the eldest grandson and was raised as the sessor since birth, so he had no choice but to shoulder the heavy burden. Some of his younger brothers entered the business world to assist Zachary, and some went into their favorite fields. They were all leaders in their respective industries. ¡°Ms. Stone, do you want me to give you a ride?¡± Remy asked warmly and looked at Elisa with a smile that reached his eyes. Elisa feltfortable around him. She subconsciously became a little gentler and said, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Johnson. But there¡¯s no need for that. My driver will pick me up.¡± Elisa only followed to find out who was the ostentatious person with the convoy. Since she had figured that it was Remy Johnson, she did not need to follow anymore. She could not follow him even if she wanted to because of her t tire. ¡°Then I¡¯ll get going first.¡± Elisa replied, ¡°Okay, go ahead. I¡¯ll wait here for my driver.¡± Remy smiled and said a few pleasantries before he returned to his car. He waved goodbye to Elisa again and drew the curtains of his car window. Soon, the car engine started. Within a few minutes, Elisa could no longer see his convoy. Meanwhile, Serenity was still waiting for Zachary at the entrance of his office. After Elisa left, Serenity went into the milk tea shop, picked a seat, and sent a message to Zachary. Serenity: [Zachary, have you gotten off work yet? I¡¯m waiting for you at the milk teal shop opposite your office.] Zachary: [Why did youe here when it¡¯s so cold today? Did you wear a thick coat?] Serenity: [You know what I wore when I left the house this morning. I won¡¯t catch a cold. Let¡¯s go to my sister¡¯s ce for lunch. I don¡¯t have to be at the store now, so I thought of picking you up from work since I have nothing to do. Why? Do you not like that I¡¯m here? If you don¡¯t like it, I won¡¯te here again.] Zachary: [I¡¯m happy, ecstatic, ttered, and overjoyed that you came to pick me up. I¡¯m hoping to get this treatment every day!] If he dared say that he did not like it, Serenity would actually not show up here anymore. Zachary: [Give me ten minutes. I¡¯ll head out soon.] Serenity: [Okay.] Serenity agreed to wait. While she waited for him, she scrolled through some videos. Ten minutes passed in the blink of an eye. Zachary came out earlier than everyone else. He came out with a bright smile on his face, which shocked everyone. They all stopped to look at him and thought they were delusional. If it were not for his group of bodyguards following him from afar, everyone would have thought that the smiling man was not their boss. ¡°Seren!¡± Zachary did not drive. He walked over quickly and called out to Serenity as he walked. ¡°Where¡¯s your car?¡± Zachary added, ¡°Didn¡¯t youe to pick me up from work? You won¡¯t send me back to work in the afternoon?¡± Serenity smiled and stretched out her hand to pinch his cheek. ¡°This feels good. At least you¡¯re eating well.¡± She liked to pinch his face. Zachary lowered his head and looked at her with a smile. He said dotingly, ¡°If you like to pinch my face, you should just tell me to lower my head so you don¡¯t have to raise your hand so high.¡± He lowered his head as he said that, and Serenity pinched his face again. Grandma May said that if she wanted a good husband, she had to train him. This made sense because Zachary was no longer as cold as before toward Serenity, which was the result of Serenity¡¯s training.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 725 Chapter 725 Chapter 725 Seeing that Serenity only pinched his face twice and withdrew her hand, Zachary looked at her deeply and said in a low voice, ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to give me a kiss since I already bowed my head?¡± Serenity looked around quickly and whispered to him coquettishly, ¡°There are so* many people around!¡± There were a lot of customers in the milk tea shop. Serenity was only bold when she spoke, but she could not walk the talk. Zachary frowned. ¡°Why don¡¯t I kiss you then?¡± Before Serenity could reply, he held her face with both hands, leaned forward, and kissed her red lips. He did not go further and let her go after a quick peck. He said dotingly, ¡°Let¡¯s go back for lunch, We shouldn¡¯t keep your sister waiting.¡± Zachary held Serenity¡¯s hand and walked toward her car. Then, he took the car keys from her and said, ¡°Let me drive.¡± Serenity did not object. They both knew how to drive, so it did not matter who drove. After getting in the car, Serenity asked him, ¡°Did your boss¡¯s wife show up yet?¡± Zachary turned his head to look at her and continued to drive calmly as he asked, ¡± Why? Are you interested in my boss¡¯s wife?¡± ¡°No, but when I got here earlier, I saw Elisa sitting in the milk tea shop. She was facing your office building, so I think she still hasn¡¯t gotten over your boss. ¡°Afterward, a convoy drove out of your office building, and she hurried away. I don¡¯t know if it¡¯s your boss¡¯s car. Your boss always goes everywhere with a group of bodyguards with such big fanfare. Besides your boss, I can¡¯t think of anyone who¡¯d go around in a convoy.¡± Zachary broke out in a cold sweat when he heard what she said. He was d that he came outte. Otherwise, Elisa would have seen him and Serenity together. Coincidentally, Remy came to see him again before returning to Annenburg. Remy was also just as ostentatious as he was, which attracted Elisa¡¯s attention. Thus, he managed to avoid meeting Elisa. ¡®Wait, that¡¯s not right.¡¯ Zachary soon realized something was wrong. The car he usually used was a Rolls Royce. Elisa used to pester him a lot, so she knew his car well. Remy often used two cars-a Maybach and a Porsche. It was impossible for Elisa to think that Remy¡¯s car was Zachary¡¯s. Did Elisa and Remy know each other? This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Did Elisae for Remy? Perhaps it was his experience from matchmaking Josh and Jasmine that made Zachary think that he could do it again. After Clive found out that Zachary was Serenity¡¯s husband, Clive helped Zachary keep his identity a secret because he was afraid Elisa would not be able to ept that the man she loved was her cousin¡¯s husband. He was afraid that Elisa would treat Serenity badly and ruin the rtionship between the cousins. If Elisa could put her feelings for Zachary onto others, would she be able to ept Zachary¡¯s identity when she finds out? That way, it would not destroy her sisterhood with Serenity. Remy was a good candidate. When Zachary thought of finding a match for Jasmine, he thought that if Josh was not suitable, he would introduce Remy to Jasmine. However, Serenity said that Jasmine did not want to marry someone who was from another city, nor did she like to marry into a wealthy family. The Johnsons were filthy rich. Although Josh was also from a wealthy family, his family was not on the same level as the Johnsons. After all, Josh¡¯s family and Julian¡¯s family were separated. ¡°The convoy that came out of my office just now wasn¡¯t my boss¡¯s, but one of our important clients. I mentioned him to you before. He¡¯s the fifth son of the Johnson family in Annenburg. Mr. Johnson is a great man and a perfect gentleman. He¡¯s known to be good-natured in the business circle.¡± Chapter 726 Chapter 726 Chapter 726 Serenity said, ¡°Did Elisa recognize the wrong car?¡± Zachary smiled and said, ¡°Maybe not. Perhaps Ms. Stone has let go of her feelings for Mr. York and fallen in love with Mr. Johnson.¡± Serenity thought Elisa had been infatuated with Mr. York for many years, so it was unlikely that Elisa would recognize the wrong car. She said, ¡°She probably hasn¡¯t fallen in love with Mr. Johnson. Maybe something about Mr. Johnson caught her attention. ¡°Is Mr. Johnson really nice? Elisa is amazing. If she can be with Mr. Johnson, we can all be relieved for her. I feel bad that she didn¡¯t end up with Mr. York.¡± Serenity was Elisa¡¯s love strategist. Since she could not help Elisa with Mr. York, it would be nice if she could match Elisa and Remy. However, Remy was from Annenburg, which was a little far away from Wiltspoon. Serenity wondered if her aunt would mind Elisa marrying out of town since Elisa was her only daughter. ¡°Let¡¯s just wait and see. If Ms. Stone and Mr. Johnson get along well, we can help them behind the scenes. It depends on whether they¡¯re fated to be together.¡± In the past, Zachary hated Elisa and thought she wascking in many ways. Now, he had to admit that although Elisa was spoiled, willful, reckless, and hot- tempered, she was an upright person. Moreover, Elisa was also very kind to Serenity. Zachary appreciated those who treated Serenity well. Elisa¡¯s kindness to Serenity was not based on their blood rtionship as cousins, but because they genuinely get along well. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Yeah.¡± Serenity likewise knew that there was no rush. She wanted to observe them carefully. If Elisa got along with Remy, Serenity would tell Clive about it so that Stone Group and FC & Co. could cooperate. That way, it would be more convenient for Remy to get in touch with Elisa. Zachary parked the car at the entrance of a supermarket and said to Serenity, ¡°I¡¯ll go in and buy some fruit for Sonny.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t buy any more toys.¡± Serenity got out of the car. ¡°Elisa buys toys for Sonny every time she visits. Sonny has so many toys that he can open a toy store.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Isn¡¯t it good that Sonny is so loved by everyone? Although his parents are separated and hecks fatherly love, with so many of us loving him, he can still grow up healthily.¡± When Sonny gets older, Zachary thought of grooming Sonny using the York family¡¯s method every winter and summer vacation so as to train Sonny to be a prodigy. Zachary could guarantee Sonny¡¯s bright future as long as Sonny was willing to learn. Of course, Zachary would not put in any more effort if Sonny was a loafer. ¡°His grandmaes to see him every now and then, mainly toin to my sister about that b*tch Jessica. She wants my sister to remarry her scumbag son. I just can¡¯t believe how thick-skinned those people are!¡± Before Liberty got divorced, Hank¡¯s mother alwaysined that Liberty only knew how to spend money instead of earning money, and instigated Hank to go halves with Liberty. Hank cheated on Liberty, so they got divorced. As soon as they divorced, Hank¡¯s mother saw how much Jessica was spending and keptining about Jessica. She even felt that Liberty was better than Jessica. Zachary¡¯s ck eyes flickered. He said, ¡°As long as she doesn¡¯te to take Sonny away, just listen to what she has to say. That way, Liberty can know how Hank and Jessica are doing. To be honest, Seren, I really want to see both Hank and Jessica struggling in life.¡± Even Zachary had a heart for gossip. Chapter 727 Chapter 727 Chapter 727 Serenity held Zachary¡¯s arm and entered the store with him. She said with a smile,¡± You¡¯re right. If she doesn¡¯te toin, we won¡¯t know that the Browns don¡¯t like Jessica.¡± Zachary and Serenity bought several kinds of fruit from the supermarket and came out with two big shopping bags. When they arrived at Liberty¡¯s rented house, Liberty nagged at them. Liberty did not reprimand her brother-inw and only nagged at her younger sister.¡± Zachary still has to repay the mortgage. Even if he has a high ie, he still needs to save some money. When you have children, your expenses will increase. I¡¯m not short of food or anything else, so you should stop Zachary if he wants to buy us things.¡± ¡°Liberty, your brother-inw is just being nice to you, so you should just ept it. If you feel sorry for him and think that he¡¯s under pressure to pay off the mortgage, I¡¯ll transfer the money to himter. Just take it as I bought these for you, okay? ¡°Also, I realize that you¡¯re being partial toward Zachary. I¡¯m your sister, ya know?¡± Liberty poked her forehead lightly. ¡°Zachary¡¯s family is so kind to you. Since I¡¯m your family, I have to treat Zachary well too.¡± Liberty treated Zachary the same way the York family treated her younger sister. As Serenity¡¯s rtive, Liberty seemed to favor her brother-inw, but she only hoped that her brother- inw would treat her sister better because of this. Serenity stuck out her tongue yfully. After lunch, Serenity sent Zachary back to the office. Zachary, who was personally chauffeured by his wife to and from work, was smiling all afternoon and was in an unusually good mood. For the first time ever, he even took the initiative to invite Duncan and Josh out for dinner. That was because his wife was leaving him tonight to have dinner with Jasmine. Since his wife was with her girlfriend, Zachary would be with his friends. Then, he would create a chance encounter so he could have dinner with his wife. After Zachary slept with Serenity, he became so clingy that he wanted to be attached to Serenity at all times. Although Serenity was having dinner with Jasmine, Zachary still felt jealous because she left him alone. ¡°I heard from the secretary that you¡¯ve been smiling all afternoon. Zachary, you¡¯re so easily satisfied. Serenity just came to pick you up for lunch and sent you back to work, but you look so stupidly happy.¡± Josh certainly would not refuse Zachary¡¯s invitation for dinner, especially when he knew that Jasmine had also left him to have dinner with his boss¡¯s wife. He felt that his masculinity took a great hit and he felt inferior to the boss¡¯s wife. Thus, he went to Zachary¡¯s office and made fun of Zachary as soon as he entered the door. Zachary had just finished his conversation with Duncan. When he saw Josh, he put down his phone and decided not to care about Josh¡¯sment because he was in a good mood. He said, ¡°You don¡¯t have a wife yet, so you can¡¯t appreciate the happiness of a married man like me.¡± ¡°You really know how to agitate me with that.¡± Josh sat down opposite him. ¡°I¡¯ve been working hard to chase my future wife.¡± Josh leaned back and added, ¡°When I take her down, let¡¯s see if you can still show off your love in front of me!¡± Zachary said with a smile, ¡°Anyway, you¡¯ll still be single this year.¡± ¡°There are so few days left in the year. So what if I stay single?¡± Josh thought of Duncan, the true bachelor, and said with a smile, ¡°From now on, we can show off in front of Duncan and show him what it¡¯s like to be in love. Maybe he¡¯ll get triggered and think about his love life.¡± At the mention of Duncan¡¯s love life, Zachary stopped smiling and said, ¡°The elders of the Lewis family are anxious about Duncan¡¯s marriage, but their requirements are also very high. They¡¯re not like our families who can ept our partners as long as we like them.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 728 Chapter 728 Chapter 728 ¡°Mrs. Lewis wants Duncan to marry a woman whose family has at least several billions of dors in assets. She thinks that¡¯s the kind of woman who is worthy of Duncan.¡± N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Duncan himself had a worth of tens of billions of dors. Mrs. Lewis felt that her youngest son was excellent in every aspect except for his scarred face. Since her son was so outstanding, only an equally outstanding woman would be worthy of him. Josh thought Mrs. Lewis appeared friendly, but in fact, she was rather condescending. When he met Mrs. Lewis at a banquet, Mrs. Lewis would only talk to other women with simr status to her and would look down on everyone else. Perhaps Duncan knew his mother too well and felt that it was difficult to find a girlfriend who could satisfy his mother, so he just gave up. If Duncan were present, he would say, ¡°I really don¡¯t like anyone. That¡¯s why I¡¯m not dating.¡± ¡°By the way, are you pursuing Ms. Sox or her younger brother? When I returned from my business trip, I heard that you invited Drake to dinner every now and then and asionally apanied him to races. You even lent him your race car.¡¯ Zachary leaned closer to Josh and said with a smile, ¡°Josh, I heard gossip that¡¯s rted to you. Do you want to hear it?¡± Josh scoffed and said, ¡°Who can beat me when ites to gossip? I¡¯ve known about it. Some people see that I¡¯m always with Drake, so they suspect that I like young and handsome men.¡± Every time Josh invited Drake to dinner, Jasmine followed too, so why didn¡¯t those people see her? Josh was taking the brother-inw route to woo his future wife! ¡°Ms. Sox doesn¡¯t hate me, but I think she doesn¡¯t like my background. That¡¯s not something I can control. So many women envy my background, but Jasmine actually despises me for being overly rich and doesn¡¯t want to date me. ¡°Most women dislike their boyfriends for being poor, but the girl I like dislikes me for being rich. That¡¯s why my only way is to start with Drake, who idolizes me. He shows up as soon as I ask him out. ¡°Ms. Sox is afraid that her brother will sell her out, so whenever I ask Drake out for dinner, she¡¯ll follow. That way, I¡¯ll get my chance to perform in front of her.¡± Zachary was speechless. He thought Josh was good with women, but it turned out that Josh was no better than him. Josh always said the right things and analyzed Zachary¡¯s rtionship problems well. ¡°Is Serenitying to thepany¡¯s annual dinner?¡± ¡°Of course!¡± ¡°I¡¯ll invite Jasmine againter. If she doesn¡¯t want toe with me, I¡¯ll have to ask Serenity to help me bring her over. ¡± Josh decided to make Jasmine his femalepanion at this year¡¯spany annual dinner. He intended for her to be his femalepanion forever. ¡°Since you requested, my wife and I won¡¯t let you down. Let¡¯s go. My wife has probably left the house. Oh right, which restaurant do you usually go to? Seren said that they¡¯re going to the restaurant that you brought them to.¡± Hearing this, Josh smiled and said, ¡°I knew Jasmine liked that restaurant.¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll lead the way. We can text Duncan when we arrive. He doesn¡¯t have a crush and only knows how to make money all day long. He earns so much but doesn¡¯t have a wife to help him spend it.¡± Zachary agreed. Poor Duncan. He was ditched by his friends. He was left all alone. Duncan thought they would be the three most eligible bachelors in Wiltspoon, but he was the only one left. Chapter 729 Chapter 729 Chapter 729 After leaving the office, Zachary got into Josh¡¯s car. Josh said to him, ¡°I get that you don¡¯t want to take your luxury car, but why aren¡¯t you driving the MPV that you specially bought to deceive your wife?¡± Zachary said while fastening his seat belt. ¡°If I go with you, my wife won¡¯t have to worry about me being unemployed.¡± ¡°You, unemployed? Why is Serenity worried that you¡¯ll be unemployed?¡± Josh almostughed out loud. Serenity was not worried about anything but Zachary losing his job. If Zachary did not take charge of York Corporation, all eight of his younger brothers would cry to death. He could take on the burden of nine of them by himself. ¡°She didn¡¯t say it, but she¡¯s starting to feel sorry for my wallet and told me not to spend money carelessly. If I¡¯m seen with you frequently, she¡¯ll think that I¡¯m licking your boots, so she won¡¯t have to worry anymore.¡± Josh said, ¡°She doesn¡¯t know that she¡¯s actually the real boss, huh?¡± At the mention of Serenity, Zachary¡¯s eyes turned tender. He agreed with what Josh said. Ring ring ring¡­ ¡°My wife is calling.¡± Josh tactfully turned down the music in the car when he heard this.Owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary¡¯s tone was still serious when he answered the phone, but only those who knew him well could tell that he spoke gentler than usual. ¡°Zachary, have you eaten yet?¡± ¡°Are you asking me out for dinner?¡± Zachary asked instinctively. However, when he recalled that Serenity ditched him to eat with Jasmine, he added bitterly, ¡°Oh, right. You invited Ms. Sox to dinner and didn¡¯t want me to follow, so how could you call to invite me?¡±. ¡°Tsk tsk¡­ Are you jealous again? Jasmine is my best friend, but you still want topare yourself to her. You¡¯re my husband whom I¡¯ll spend the rest of my life with, so you two are in different positions. There¡¯s no need topare.¡± ¡°You have a business engagement tonight, right? Don¡¯t drink too much. You should eat something before drinking. If you need me to pick you up, just send me a message.¡± Zachary, who was still jealous of Jasmine, felt much better. No matter how important Jasmine was to Serenity, she would not be spending the rest of her life with her. He was the person who would spend the rest of his life with Serenity. Serenity was right. There was really no need topare himself with Jasmine. Otherwise, he would get jealous every day. Moreover, Serenity would not cut off ties with Jasmine just because he was jealous of her. ¡°I¡¯m apanying Mr. Bucham to have dinner with a client, so I won¡¯t drink much.¡± Serenity added a few more words and hung up the phone. ¡°Married men are really different. When it¡¯s time for dinner, someone will call to ask if you¡¯ve eaten. She¡¯s always thinking about you and even worries that you¡¯ll get drunk when you¡¯re at a business engagement.¡± Zachary put his phone back into his pants pocket and said calmly, ¡°That¡¯s why I like to be controlled by my wife.¡± Josh was speechless. In fact, Serenity did not control Zachary at all. Zachary always described her as a strict wife, but he was just trying to show off his rtionship in front of his friend. During dinner, Serenity and Jasmine ordered a lot of dishes. How would Serenity feel when she saw her husband walk in while her mouth was stuffed with delicious food? Serenity thought, ¡®He knows that I¡¯m a big eater, so I don¡¯t feel embarrassed.¡¯ It did not matter if Zachary saw her. She was spending her own money, so she could eat whatever and as much as she wanted. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary pretended to meet her by chance and walked over first. However, Josh and Duncan did not follow him immediately. ¡°Mr. York,¡± Jasmine greeted Zachary. When she saw Josh not far away, she smiled at him as well. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Chapter 730 Chapter 730 Chapter 730 Serenity saw Josh and Duncan and asked in surprise, ¡°You mentioned you were going to have dinner with Mr. Bucham and a client. So, that client is Mr. Lewis?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Zachary turned to his friends. After receiving the signal, the two men walked over one after the other. ¡°Mr. Bucham. Mr. Lewis.¡± Serenity got up and greeted Josh and Duncan with a smile. Jasmine also stood up. After everyone exchanged pleasantries, Serenity said casually, ¡°If you guys don¡¯t mind, you can join us.¡± ¡°Sure!¡± Zachary responded the swiftest. Josh looked at Jasmine and said with a smile, ¡°Ms. Sox, do you mind?¡± Jasmine felt that these two men were ignoring Duncan, their important client, so she looked at Duncan and said, ¡°If Mr. Lewis doesn¡¯t mind, we can eat together.¡± Mr. Lewis was the main character, yet these two men who were supposed to have dinner with their client marginalized him. Duncan thought, ¡®So, they asked me out to be the third wheel, huh?¡¯ His friends had their respective partners, so why did they still invite him? This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Duncan did not need to eat anything and already felt sick from the sweetness of love in the air. ¡°It¡¯s up to the host,¡± Duncan said. Thus, the three men sat down as a matter of course and ordered more dishes. After Duncan sat down, he instinctively asked Serenity, ¡°Ms. Hunt, why didn¡¯t your sister and Sonny join you for dinner?¡± Everyone looked at him. Duncan blinked as he thought, ¡®Did I ask the wrong question?¡¯ Serenity was so kind to her sister, and she loved Sonny so much. Thus, Duncan felt that it was a little out of character that Serenity went out for dinner without Liberty and her son. That was why he asked about them. Why was everyone looking at him. then? Serenity came back to her senses and quickly replied, ¡°My sister is trying to lose weight, so she doesn¡¯t want to eat out. She said that it¡¯ll affect our appetite if shees and doesn¡¯t eat. Sonny is more clingy to my sister at night, so if my sister doesn¡¯te, he won¡¯te either.¡± Duncan said understandingly, ¡°Kids his age cling to their mothers. Sonny is always scared of me, but I really like him. Every time I see him, I just can¡¯t help but feel like hugging him. It¡¯s a pity that he doesn¡¯t allow me to. ¡°Your sister¡¯s weight loss is quite effective. If she perseveres, she may be able to reach her ideal weight in three months.¡± In the beginning, Duncan gave Liberty three months to lose weight. Serenity thanked him on behalf of her sister. ¡°Thank you for your concern, Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan smiled and said, ¡°She used to be my employee, and now she¡¯s my tenant. That¡¯s why I pay more attention to her. It¡¯s also because I like Sonny very much.¡± Seeing that everyone was still looking at him, Duncan finally realized it and said, ¡± Why are you guys looking at me like this? Do you think I¡¯m interested in Liberty? Her ex-mother-inw also asked me if I was pursuing Liberty, but how could I? ¡°Ms. Hunt, I¡¯m not saying that your sister isn¡¯t a good woman. I mean¡­ Anyway, it¡¯s not what you think. I just like Sonny. That¡¯s why I noticed his mother.¡± Duncan felt that he was always at odds with Liberty. Whenever he saw Liberty, he would get worried that his car would be damaged. Josh smiled and said, ¡°What are we thinking? ¡°We weren¡¯t thinking about anything. Duncan, you¡¯re being sensitive and overthinking it. Well, I guess it¡¯s a good thing that you¡¯re sensitive.¡± Duncan kicked Josh under the table. Duncan was only interested in Sonny, so he paid a little extra attention to Sonny¡¯s mother. Chapter 731 Chapter 731 Chapter 731 After all, Duncan started noticing Liberty only because of Zachary. Zachary and Serenity suddenly got married, and Liberty became Zachary¡¯s sister-in-w. For his friend¡¯s sake, Duncan undercharged Liberty for the repair fee when she scratched his car. He knew that his friends had misunderstood him for having a crush on Liberty. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. However, he could not be bothered to offer an exnation. The more he tried to do so, the more suspicious he would appear; he woulde off as defensive. When the men joined, Zachary ordered two bottles of wine. Duncan did not drink because he had to driveter while Josh and Zachary drank a little without getting themselves drunk. After their meal, everyone was ready to leave when Josh suddenly said, ¡°Zachary, Duncan, how am I supposed to go home? I can¡¯t drive ¡¯cause I drank.¡± | Duncan knew in an instant that Josh was doing this on purpose because thetter wanted Jasmine to bring him home. ¡°I¡¯m busy, so I¡¯ll leave first,¡± Duncan quickly said and slipped away. Zachary chimed in, ¡°I also drank and can¡¯t send you back, Mr. Bucham. Ms. Sox, can I trouble you to send Mr. Bucham home?¡± Serenity was just about to say that she would call a substitute driver for Josh, but she quickly swallowed her words. She was their matchmaker, so she had to create opportunities for Josh. In the end, Jasmine sent Josh home. When Serenity and Zachary returned to their home in Brynfield, they found that Mrs. Lane was not around. Serenity was just about to call her when Zachary said, ¡°I gave Mrs. Lane the night off so we can have a good time alone.¡± As he spoke, he walked behind Serenity and wrapped his arms around her waist. He took her into his embrace, lowered his head to bury into her neck, and whispered,¡± Seren, call me Babe. ¡°I like it when you call me that.¡± Serenity¡¯s neck felt sore, and she wanted to push him away, but he refused to let go. She could only say, ¡°Stop that, I¡¯m ticklish.¡± Zachary deliberately kissed her cheeks, earlobes, and neck. His feather-light kisses. were intoxicating Serenity. She could not stand being teased by him like this. It was unbearable. Turning around in his arms, Serenity wrapped her arms around his neck and took the lead instead. He could tease her, but so could she. Zachary was much more sensitive than she was. Just a little teasing from her and he could no longer stand it. Sure enough, in less than two minutes, he picked her up bridal style and spun around to go into his room. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± ¡°Call me Babe.¡± ¡°Babe, we haven¡¯t showered yet¡­¡± ¡°We¡¯ll shower together.¡± Serenity blushed but did not object. Zachary carried his beautiful wife into the bathroom. After what seemed like an eternity, he came out with Serenity in his arms. He looked refreshed, while she was sleepy. When heid her on the bed, she mumbled something under her breath. Zachary leaned in to listen to what she said, but he could not hear her. Serenity was out like a log within two minutes. The next day, she was awakened by the doorbell. She reached out to feel that the man was still beside her and kicked him without opening her eyes. ¡°Zachary, go see who¡¯s at the door.¡± She was still tired. Zachary was not someone who could be teased. If he went crazy from the teasing, she would be the one to suffer. Chapter 732 Chapter 732 Chapter 732 ¡°It might be my mom.¡± Zachary got up and said, ¡°I called her after you fell asleepst night and asked her toe over to apany you to buy an evening dress for thepany¡¯s annual dinner.¡±~ Upon hearing that, Serenity¡¯s eyes snapped open. She sat up on the bed and said, ¡± You go back to sleep. I¡¯ll go get the door.¡± As she spoke, she quickly had a change of clothes andbed her hair. Zachary watched her as she moved swiftly and said, ¡°When you go out, go to the kitchen first and put on an apron.¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°Just do as I say.¡± Zachary grinned. ¡°Go on and get the door. Don¡¯t keep your mother-inw waiting.¡± Serenity turned to leave. After leaving the room, she followed Zachary¡¯s instructions and went to the kitchen to get an apron. After putting it on, she jogged over to the door while calling out, ¡°Coming.¡± The person standing in front of the door was indeed her mother-inw, Tania. ¡°Morning, Mom.¡± Serenity smiled sweetly and greeted her mother-inw. Tania was carrying two bags in both hands. Serenity saw this and quickly reached out to help her mother-inw carry the items. ¡°What are these? They¡¯re quite heavy.¡± Serenity came to answer the door in an apron, so it was obvious that she was preparing breakfast. The smile on her face was very sweet, and she even took over the bags from Tania. Tania¡¯s expression softened by a fraction. She walked into the house and said, ¡°I brought you two something to eat. One of the bags is seafood. Zack mentioned you like seafood. I came over early, so I bought you a bag of fresh seafood. ¡°This basket is full of eggs. Your nana insisted that I bring it here, saying that they¡¯re authentic farm eggs and are better than those you usually buy.¡± These eggs were actually bought too, but they were purchased from the workers of the York family¡¯s orchard. With the consent of the head of the York family, those workers caught a lot of chickens to raise in the orchard. So, technically, it was urate to say that these eggs were farm eggs. Grandma May did this to cover up for her eldest grandson so that Serenity would be convinced that he was an ordinary person. Tania handed the basket of eggs to Serenity. ¡°The dozen on top is extrarge with double yolks.¡± Serenity epted the basket of eggs along with therge bag of seafood and brought them to the kitchen. ¡°Do you have a lot of chickens at home? Tell Nana not to send them to us in the future. It¡¯s the same if we buy them from the store. ¡°Leave the eggsid by the family chickens to Nana since they¡¯re healthier for her.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Tania said, ¡°She insisted that I bring these eggs for you and Zack, so just ept her kind gesture. If you want to thank her, then fulfill her wish earlier.¡± Serenity smiled and did not reply. Grandma May¡¯s wish was to have a great-granddaughter soon. Serenity and Zachary had be a new couple, so they did not deliberately use any protection. They adopted a natural attitude when it came to having children. A child woulde to them if it was meant to be. Otherwise, they could still live in their little lovebirds¡¯ nest for a few more years. Therefore, Serenity did not make any promises to fulfill Grandma May¡¯s wish. ¡°Where¡¯s Zack?¡± Tania asked casually when she did not see her son after sitting down on the sofa. ¡°He isn¡¯t up yet.¡± Serenity put the eggs and seafood away, and swiftly went on to prepare breakfast. ¡°Have you eaten?¡± ¡°Not yet. Zack told me toe over early to go with you to pick out your evening dress. I didn¡¯t have time for breakfast.¡± Her husband¡¯s face had been incredibly sour when he found out that their son asked her toe over first thing in the morning to bring their daughter-inw out to pick an evening dress. He said, ¡°It¡¯s our son¡¯s business that he wanted to conceal his identity to examine his wife¡¯s character. Why does he have to bother my wife as well?¡± Tania did not know whether tough or cry. Chapter 733 Chapter 733 Chapter 733 ¡°What time is it already? And he¡¯s still not up?¡± ¡°Zachary is always busy and has to work overtime for social engagements. Let him sleep a little longer.¡± Tania said, ¡°It¡¯s typical for him to work until midnight beforeing home, and he still gets up early the next day for his morning run. He¡¯s onlyzy now because you¡¯re here. Serenity, you shouldn¡¯t spoil him. Whether it¡¯s men or women, you¡¯ll be the one suffering if you spoil them rotten.¡± ¡°Mom, are you badmouthing me behind my back?¡± Zachary came out of the room dressed in a suit. He exuded a certain glow and looked dashing. However, he did not put on his suit jacket and his tie was not worn. He carried those in his hands. Tania got up and walked over. ¡°You came out just as I called youzy. It¡¯s fortunate I wasn¡¯t scolding you. ¡°The weather has warmed up a bit these two days, but it¡¯s still cold in the morning. Hurry up and put your jacket on so you don¡¯t catch another cold, lest you tire out Serenity again.¡± N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Tania was just about to take his jacket to help him put it on. It was a habit of hers when taking care of her husband. Zachary quickly put on the jacket by himself. He wanted Serenity to do it for him. He put on his tie as well. Serenity¡¯s voice was heard from the kitchen. ¡°Mom, if he catches a cold again, let him get injections every day.¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face fell. Taniaughed. ¡°Zack¡¯s worst fear is the needles.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t know this, but when your daughter-inw was taking care of me, she heard me casually saying that taking medicine has a lot of side effects, so she had the doctor switch my medicine to jabs instead. She forced me to get an injection every day. I almost wanted to puke.¡± Tania¡¯s eyes twinkled, but her attitude remained unchanged as she said, ¡°Serenity is just looking out for you and wants you to get better soon. Besides, you were the one whoined about the side effects of medicine, only then she asked for injections instead. There¡¯s nothing wrong with that. ¡°You have to take care of yourself and don¡¯t make me worry about you. Also, Serenity doesn¡¯t have to look after the store now, but you can¡¯t let her do everything. Help her with the chores when you have time. ¡°Look, she got up early in the morning to work in the kitchen, but you slept in until now.¡± Tania nagged Zachary. In the kitchen, Serenity suddenly understood why Zachary asked her to wear an apron before opening the door for her mother-inw. It was so Tania could see how diligent she was. That man was still helping her out. Serenity¡¯s affection for Zachary deepened further. Zachary helped ease the rtionship between them so they would feel a little closer. There was a saying that mothers-inw and daughters-inw were natural enemies, but they both loved the same man. As long as that man mediated the conflict between these two women, they could get along nicely. Tania was not too happy with Serenity, but Zachary knew how to ease their rtionship. He deliberately let his mother see how Serenity took care of him, spoiled him, and how hard she worked. Women who married into the York family were spoiled endlessly by their husbands and could not stand seeing men barking orders while sitting on their thumbs. A man could not just leave everything to his wife and nitpick about what she did. Thus, Zachary told Serenity to open the door for his mother while wearing an apron so his mother would think that Serenity got up early to make breakfast while he continued to sleep. That way, his mother would feel sorry for Serenity and scold him instead. As a son, he did not care even if he was scolded by his mother. ¡°Mom, isn¡¯t it natural for Serenity to get up early to make breakfast and clean up the house? That¡¯s what all women do.¡± Chapter 734 Chapter 734 Chapter 734 Zachary¡¯s words instantly ignited his mother¡¯s anger. ¡°Who said that a wife has to get up early to make breakfast for you? Who said that a wife has to clean up the house? It¡¯s not natural at all. She doesn¡¯t owe you anything and doesn¡¯t need to serve you like a king. Zack, you said you learned from your father, but you couldn¡¯t be more wrong about that. ¡°You better correct yourself right now. Where did you learn those ideas from? All women who married into our family are spoiled by their husbands. You¡¯re the only one who treats Serenity like a servant, and you dare say it¡¯s only natural? Thank goodness I was the oneing over today. If your nana heard what you just said, she¡¯ll knock you over with her cane and beat you half to death. ¡°Serenity, Serenity!¡± After Tania scolded her son, she called out to Serenity, who was busy in the kitchen. Serenity quickly came out of the kitchen. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± ¡°Come here.¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. When Serenity approached Tania, thetter pulled off Serenity¡¯s apron and said to her son, ¡°Take off your suit jacket and tie. Put them onter.¡± Zachary did as he was told. Then, his beloved mother put the apron on him and pushed him toward the kitchen, saying, ¡°Go make breakfast and let Serenity rest. Change your habit of being treated like a king at home.¡± Serenity quickly said, ¡°Mom, it¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll do it.¡± ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t spoil him. I gave birth to him, so I know his temperament. He¡¯s chauvinistic and thinks everyone revolves around him. You must have suffered a lot staying with him for the past few months.¡± Serenity thought in her heart, ¡®A mother truly knows best.¡¯ In the past, Zachary indeed used to think that everyone revolved around him. He thought he was the center of the universe and was especially petty. He had a short temper too.. After the couple fought twice, he was recently in the midst of change. No one knew if he could change completely, and maybe one day, he would lose his temper and fight with her again. ¡°Mom, which one of us did you actually give birth to?¡± Zachary grumbled while tying the apron. With a disgruntled expression, he entered the kitchen, but he peeked out to wink at Serenity when he caught her eye. Tania acted indifferent to her son¡¯sints. She pulled Serenity to sit on the sofa and lectured her, ¡°Serenity, you need to share some of the chores with Zack in the future. Don¡¯t spoil him.¡± ¡°I¡¯m really not, Mom¡­ Nana taught me this before.¡± The elders of the York family were so kind. Grandma May taught her how to train Zachary to be a good husband and not to spoil him, but Serenity did not think much about it. After all, she saved Grandma May and was familiar with her. Grandma May was also someone who stood with reason rather than family. Now that her mother-inw said the same thing, it proved that Zachary¡¯s family was a good family. She lucked out by marrying Zachary. ¡°Your nana taught you, but you have to learn and use it well too. Otherwise, it would all be pointless. You¡¯ll be the one suffering if you spoil Zack rotten.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Mom, outsiders might think I¡¯m your biological daughter while Zachary is your son- inw.¡± Tania was speechless. It seemed she really was acting the opposite way when she should be favoring her son instead¡­ ¡°A good daughter-inw is likened to an actual daughter,¡± Tania said as if to convince herself. Maybe it was because she had been spoiled by her husband all her life that she took her daughter-in- law¡¯s side when she heard what her son had to say earlier. She felt like she was tricked by her son. Chapter 735 Chapter 735 Chapter 735 Tania, who felt cheated by her son, deliberately treated Serenity well during breakfast. Her son got jealous and said bitterly, ¡°Mom, was I adopted?¡± She gave him a sidelong nce and said, ¡°This is how I treat my daughter and my son.¡± It was the brat¡¯s fault for tricking her. Zachary was speechless. After the meal, Serenity sent Zachary off downstairs. ¡°I actually have an evening dress, so there¡¯s no need to buy a new one.¡± Serenity said to her husband, ¡°Evening dresses are a little expensive, and I only wear one once a year. If I buy another, it¡¯s just going to stay untouched at home. It¡¯ll be a waste if I gain weight and can¡¯t wear it anymore. I think having one dress is enough, so there¡¯s no need to buy a new one. We still need a lot of money to buy Christmas gifts. ¡°You didn¡¯t tell me about this earlier, and now you had Mome over.¡± Zachary listened to his wife¡¯sints. Before getting in the car, he gently brushed Serenity¡¯s pretty nose and said, ¡°Seren, I told you before that we¡¯ll live within our means. I would never do this if I was financially strained. I¡¯m doing this to show you that we¡¯re still pretty well off. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I still have enough money to add two evening dresses to my wife¡¯s closet. We¡¯ll just buy a few things for Christmas and some gifts for the elders. We¡¯ll receive a lot of gifts in return, especially you. It¡¯s your first Christmas at my ce, so they¡¯ll shower you with lots of gifts.¡± He deliberately added, ¡°You have to share half of your presents with me. It¡¯s because of me that you became a wife of the York family.¡± Serenity could not help butugh. ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll split my presents with you.¡± ¡°I already transferred the money for the evening dresses to my mom in advance. Her social circle is not limited to just the nobledies, and she understands the trends, so she can help choose a dress that suits you. She can also tell if the material is good or bad, so don¡¯t worry about being scammed.¡± Zachary was afraid Serenity would not spend his money, so he transferred the money to his mother in advance. His mother did not want his money, but Zachary said that his wife¡¯s expenses were his responsibility, and there was no reason for his mother to help him bear those expenses. Tania stopped arguing with her son and simply epted the amount he transferred to her. ¡°Okay, Zachary.¡± ¡°Call me Babe.¡± Zachary looked at her tenderly and whispered, ¡°Say it in a gentle and mushy voice so that I feel warm and tingly all over.¡± Serenity pped his arm and said, ¡°Like the way you say it? I don¡¯t feel warm all over. I get goosebumps instead.¡± ¡°Come on, Seren. If you¡¯re not used to being mushy, then just say it gently. I feel good after hearing it. I¡¯ll have more energy at work, and I¡¯ll be able to finish work early toe back and apany you.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Serenity was helpless against his stubbornness and called him Babe. ¡°Even a mosquito is louder than you.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Go to work already. I¡¯ll buy a megaphone when I go shopping with Momter and use it to call you Babe every day so the entire neighborhood can hear me, okay?¡± ¡°Really?¡± ¡°Absolutely.¡± Under Serenity¡¯s repeated urging, Zachary reluctantly drove away in his car. After driving out of Brynfield, he met up with his bodyguards, got into his exclusive car, and went to York Corporation with their escort. When Zachary left for work, Serenity went shopping for an evening dress apanied by her mother- inw. Chapter 736 Chapter 736 Chapter 736 Tania had the intention to make her daughter-inw the most dazzling woman in the room at the company¡¯s annual dinner. The evening gown she selected for Serenity was the most beautiful one. Thanks to Serenity¡¯s mien, she was able to unt the selling points of the dress. Tania stared at Serenity, who looked like a different person when she changed into the evening dress. Shemented, ¡°Seren, you bear a pretty decent aura. You¡¯ll definitely be a celebrity if you¡¯re willing to learn etiquette.¡± ¡°Mom, my goal is to earn more money to buy a house. I¡¯m not interested in bing a celebrity. Celebrities have strong family backgrounds whereas I¡¯m just a small bookseller who relies on coboration with a school to earn a living. How would I dare dream of something that impossible?¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Zack already has two houses¡­¡± Honestly, Tania wanted to say but kept it to herself, ¡®My son doesn¡¯t have much of anything but money and houses.¡¯ ¡°I want to buy a house in a school district in advance.¡± Tania looked at Serenity and smiled. ¡°That¡¯s good. Buy a house in a school catchment area in advance and renovate it. When you and Zachary have children in the future, it¡¯ll be convenient to send them to school.¡± Serenity¡¯s words let Tania know that Zachary and Serenity were a real couple, not just one on paper. Tania appeared to be smiling but she was sighing internally. It seemed that Serenity was going to be her daughter-inw for real and this fact is indisputable. In the future, she would give more guidance to her daughter-inw. It would not be easy to be the eldest daughter-inw in the family. Not only that, but Serenity was also the wife of the man who was in charge of the next generation of the York family. The York family had nine sons in Zachary¡¯s generation, and there was no way all nine of them would marry a woman without an elite family background as Zachary did. In the future, it would depend on Serenity whether she could get along with her sisters- inw with family statuses countless times better than hers and not be suppressed by them. Tania believed in her mother-inw¡¯s foresight and felt that Serenity could bear the burden of being the wife of the next man in charge of the York family. However, she was still of the opinion that Serenity had a lot to learn. Since her son had not yet confessed everything to Serenity, Tania was not in a position to train Serenity to be the wife of the head of the family without having a strong family background herself. It was like Audrey. Audrey was Serenity¡¯s aunt and would not sit idly by when Serenity¡¯s identity as the York family¡¯s eldest daughter-inw was exposed in the future. Compared to Tania who was Serenity¡¯s mother-inw, Audrey would definitely be more anxious and want to make Serenity stronger. That eased Tania¡¯s worry a little. ¡°We¡¯ll take this one. I guarantee Zack will be floored when he sees you in it.¡± Tania decided to get Serenity the dress that she was wearing now. There were several other gowns that she thought were good after Serenity tried them on earlier, so she bought those as well. After buying the dresses, Tania took Serenity to buy high heels. Serenity had to drive often and did not wear high heels, but now that she was attending thepany¡¯s annual dinner, she had to wear a pair of heels. The mother-inw and daughter-inw shopped for most of the day and bought a lot of things. Serenity bought several new clothes for Zachary with her own money. When he forced her to act domineering, she said she would buy him a few more sets of clothes so he could only wear the clothes she bought for him in the future. She had yet to do as she said after he returned from his business trip. Since she was on a shopping spree today, she could finally keep her word. Tania saw Serenity buy a couple of sets of suits worth twenty thousand each for Zachary. They were very expensive clothes for ordinary people. Serenity really was treating Zachary well! Chapter 737 Chapter 737 Chapter 737 Serenity and Tania got into the car with bagsrge and small before Serenity drove her mother-inw home. Unbeknownst to Serenity, a luxury car came to a stop. The person in the car wound down the window to look at Serenity¡¯s car in the distance now, and asked her daughter-inw who was beside her, ¡°Alice, was one of those two women Seren?¡± Alice nodded affirmatively. ¡°It¡¯s Seren.¡± ¡°Was that woman with her the wife of the current head of the Yorks, Zachary¡¯s mother?¡± Audrey¡¯s eyes were very sharp. The York and Stone families did not see eye-to-eye. Audrey and Tania would oppose each other when they met, so Audrey could recognize Tania like the back of her hand. Just now, she saw her niece with Tania in the same car from a distance and urgently asked her daughter-inw to stop so she could see clearly. It really was Tania! Why was her niece with Tania? ¡°Mom, that person just looks like Mrs. York. She¡¯s not her. I didn¡¯t get a good look at her face since it¡¯s a bit far away.¡± Alice did not dare speak in absolute terms. ¡°It¡¯s her. I¡¯m sure it¡¯s her. We¡¯ve been at each other¡¯s neck for so many years that I would recognize her even if she was cremated into ashes. Seren and Tania were together, and they seem to have a very cordial rtionship. Seren¡¯s husband¡¯s,st name is also York¡­¡¯ Audrey instantly thought of her nephew-inw whom she had overlooked. Come to think of it, she never seemed to have asked for his name. ¡°Alice, do you think Serenity¡¯s husband is Zachary? Or his younger brother? No, Zachary¡¯s brothers don¡¯t work at York Corporation, but Serenity¡¯s husband does. It must be Zachary then.¡± Alice¡¯s heart seized, but she tried to calm down, afraid that her mother-inw would find out that her husband and herself discovered long ago that Zachary was Serenity¡¯s husband. Audrey did not notice Alice¡¯s reaction and continued to analyze, ¡°If Zachary is Serenity¡¯s husband, many things would make sense now. It¡¯s no wonder her husband went on a business trip as soon as the DNA results came out. ¡°He had a guilty conscience and used a business trip as an excuse to avoid us.¡± At that time, Audrey had been preupied with her niece because she had just found them, so she did not ask much about her nephew-inw. She did not make a big deal out of it. After the deduction, Audrey immediately took out her cell phone and called Serenity. Serenity was driving, but when she saw that it was a call from her aunt, she answered it anyway. ¡°Aunt Audrey.¡± ¡°Seren, where are you now? I want to go shopping but there¡¯s no one to apany me. Can you come with me?¡± Alice, on the other hand, hurriedly sent a message to her husband while her mother-in w was on the phone. [Clive, Mom knows that Serenity¡¯s husband is Zachary.] Clive quickly replied upon seeing the message: [How did she find out?] He had not told his parents yet. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. [We saw Serenity and Mrs. York shopping outside together. The mother-inw and daughter-inw looked on good terms and bought a lot of things.] Clive was speechless. The bestid ns of mice and men often go awry. Chapter 738 Chapter 738 Chapter 738 Tania rarely went out shopping. If she needed something, she would tell the brand to make a delivery straight to her home. However, the one time she came out today, she was seen by Audrey. Zachary could fool Serenity, but he could not fool Audrey. Serenity was still in the dark about these things andughed when she heard Audrey¡¯s words. ¡°Could you give me a moment? I¡¯m with my mother-inw now. I¡¯m sending her home first.¡± Audrey said, ¡°You can ask your mother-inw to join us since we haven¡¯t met yet. Let¡¯s get acquainted and have a meal together.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll ask what she thinks.¡± Serenity also felt that it was time to let her aunt and mother-inw meet. The elder in her family who treated Serenity and her sister the best was their aunt. Tania kept an ear out for Serenity and her aunt¡¯s conversation. Before Serenity could ask, she said, ¡°Seren, it¡¯s been a while since I shopped and we had a long day shopping today. My feet are sore from walking. I don¡¯t want to stroll anymore. Send my apologies to your aunt. We¡¯ll get together for a meal some other day when we¡¯re free.¡± Since Tania did not want to walk around anymore, Serenity apologized and said, ¡± Aunt Audrey, my mother-inw said she¡¯s tired out from shopping, so she¡¯ll pass on the invite and we shall have a meal together another time. Are Elisa and Alice not around to apany you?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Even if they were not around, Darrell was retired and at home. He could also apany her. ¡°That¡¯s fine, we can meet another day. You send your mother-inw home first. Ask your husband if he¡¯s free in the evening, and call your sister to bring Sonny over to my ce for dinner today. I haven¡¯t met your husband either. By the way, what¡¯s his name?¡± ¡°Zachary York. He most likely won¡¯t be avable. I asked him before, and he said he¡¯ll be on holiday soon. He¡¯ll only be free to visit you after New Year.¡± Audrey hummed again and reminded Serenity to drive carefully before hanging up the phone. ¡°Zachary York. Zachary York!¡± Audrey gritted her teeth. Alice looked at her mother-inw¡¯s dark expression and asked carefully, ¡°Mom, maybe they just share the same name?¡± ¡°Serenity might think that they just share the same name, but do you believe that as well? How can it be so coincidental? The eldest young master of the wealthy York¡¯s name is Zachary York. Young people don¡¯t know his name, but I¡¯m old enough to know. ¡°Elisa never got the chance to see Serenity¡¯s husband. I think it¡¯s because he¡¯s deliberately avoiding her.¡± Audrey felt both admiration and resentment for Zachary. Her baby daughter was the best in her eyes and was more than worthy of Zachary. However, Zachary did not even spare Elisa a nce, causing her to be trapped in love for many years. Zachary turned his nose up at her daughter but married her niece instead. Audrey did not know how to describe her current feelings. Leaving aside her daughter¡¯s infatuation with Zachary, she was worried about her niece marrying him. She was afraid that Serenity could not integrate herself into Zachary¡¯s circle. No matter how good, low-key, and easy-going the York family was, it could not change the fact that they were the richest family in Wiltspoon. The education they had received, the society they were involved in, and the friends they had made were all things Serenity had never encountered. Serenity¡¯s and Zachary¡¯s backgrounds werepletely mismatched. Although their rtionship had been improving and love might help them temporarily ignore a lot of practical issues, would Zachary still be able to live an ordinary life as a couple with Serenity once that passion burns out in the future? That said, Serenity most likely did not know that Zachary was the head of the York family. Otherwise, she would not have taught Elisa how to pursue him. Alice did not dare say anything. Her mother-inw was incredibly furious at the moment. ¡°Go to thepany, Alice.¡± Audrey was livid when she found out that her nephew-inw was Zachary, but she did not impulsively tell her daughter. She decided to go to the office to discuss it with her eldest son. ¡°Now? I¡¯m not sure if Clive is free.¡± Alice spoke as she put the car in motion. Audrey said with a sullen face, ¡°Even if he¡¯s not free, he¡¯ll make time to see me if I go over.¡± Alice knew better than to say more and drove the car in silence. Chapter 739 Chapter 739 Chapter 739 Audrey was silent throughout the journey to thepany. No one knew what she was thinking. Alice was a little worried that her mother-inw would do something to Serenity because of Elisa. After all, as a niece, Serenity¡¯s rtionship with Audrey did not run that deep. Audrey would naturally favor Elisa, her own daughter. When they arrived at Stone Group, Audrey walked straight into the office building while Alice deliberately trailed behind. She called Clive. ¡°Clive, Mom is here. She¡¯ll be in your office soon.¡± After a moment of silence, Clive said, ¡°All right. Don¡¯t worry. Mom is angry, but she won¡¯t do anything.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. She might even think that Zachary was blind. Elisa was worthy of Zachary in every way, but of all the people Zachary fell in love with, he had to fall for Serenity. To aggravate the situation, Serenity had be their cousin now. If only they were not rted by blood¡­ Clive was also stumped about what to do. Most likely, they would not let Serenity off easy. They would always feel that it was Serenity¡¯s existence that caused Elisa¡¯s pursuit to fail. ¡°I won¡¯t go upstairs. Mom looks really upset. I¡¯ll wait for her in the VIP lounge on the first floor while you talk to her.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Alice hung up the phone and went to wait in the VIP lounge. She had no idea how their conversation went but Audrey only came back down in the evening. ¡°Mom.¡± Alice quickly walked out of the VIP lounge. Audrey still looked upset, but her anger was not as obvious anymore. Alice was slightly relieved to see that. ¡°Alice, give me the car keys. I¡¯ll go home by myself. You wait here a while longer and go back with Clive.¡± ¡°Oh, okay.¡± Alice handed the car keys to her mother-inw. Audrey took the car keys and walked away with a tense face. Serenity was in the dark about all these. After she returned to Brynfield with Tania, her father-inw called and urged his wife. to go home. Serenity wanted Tania to stay for dinner, but thetter politely refused. ¡°Your father-inw won¡¯t eat if I don¡¯t go back to apany him. I¡¯ll head home now. Ask Zack if he¡¯s coming back for dinner. If he¡¯s not, you can eat whatever you want. There¡¯s no need to save money for him. ¡°As wives, we need to learn how to spend money. Only then will our husbands have the motivation to earn money.¡± Serenityughed. That depended on the husband whether he was willing to provide for his wife to spend. If the man was someone who wanted to go Dutch in everything, it would be better to live by herself instead. Tania left. Serenity sent a message to ask Zachary. When she got a reply saying that he would not be back for dinner, she went to her sister¡¯s ce instead. Liberty was making chili sauce. As soon as Serenity came through the door, she could smell the sharp aroma of spices and sneezed several times. ¡°Liberty, why does it smell so spicy?¡± Liberty wore gloves, a mask, and a pair of goggles. ¡°There are plenty of people in Wiltspoon, and their tastes vary. Many like spicy food.¡± Liberty¡¯s hands kept moving as she spoke. ¡°If the chili sauce is made well, maybe there¡¯ll be more returning customers.¡± Wiltspoonians did not really fancy spicy food, but of course, there was still a handful Chai of them who enjoyed it. The general Wiltspoonians had a lighter pte and they liked making soups. ¡°Are the pickled beans ready?¡± Chapter 740 Chapter 740 Chapter 740 ¡°Not yet. The beans will have to be sun-dried before being pickled.¡± Serenity stayed away from the kitchen because it was too spicy. She nced around the house once but did not see Sonny or Mrs. Lane, and asked, ¡°Did Mrs. Lane take Sonny out?¡± ¡°Yeah, Sonny doesn¡¯t like the spiciness and told Mrs. Lane to take him out for a walk. They¡¯ll be back later for dinner. Seren, why did youe at this time? Don¡¯t you need to cook for Zachary? You also mentioned that you were out to get an evening dress. Have you bought one?¡± Serenity walked into her sister¡¯s small kitchen and helped to wash the vegetables while replying, ¡°I bought a few dresses. My mother-inw helped me choose. She has really good taste. The gowns she selected were all really beautiful.¡± However, they cost a bomb. She secretly asked the clerk and found out that if she were to buy the dresses her mother-inw had chosen, she would only be able to buy two or three pieces at most. Although it was Zachary¡¯s money, Serenity still felt bad about it. That guy was really a big spender. Those who earned more would spend more as well. Fortunately, he had a lot of savings and bought a house in Brynfield. Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Liberty hummed. Ring ring ring¡­ The doorbell rang. ¡°Go see who¡¯s at the door, Seren. My hands are dirty.¡± Liberty shouted for her sister to get the door. Serenity came out of the kitchen and went over to open the door. ¡°It should be Mrs. Lane and Sonny. Mrs. Lane- What are you doing here?¡± The person standing at the door was not Mrs. Lane and Sonny, but Olivia. ¡°Serenity, is your sister home? I-I¡¯m here to chat with your sister. Where¡¯s Sonny? I want to see him too.¡± Olivia was a little afraid of Serenity now. ¡°You want to chat with my sister at this time of day? You mean you want to bump a meal off her. What now, does your new daughter-inw not cook for you? Does she not make you a seafood feast?¡± Serenity could not help but speak sarcastically when it came to Olivia. In the past, when Olivia brought her daughter and her family over, it was Serenity and Liberty who cooked for them. The family loved seafood, so every time they came over, they wanted Liberty to buy and prepare a seafood feast for them. When they finished eating, they even took the leftovers home. After they left, Hank would always me Liberty for spending so much money. He implied that Liberty should use her own money to pay for the food used to feed her in-ws. Olivia looked embarrassed. Since it was too expensive to live in a hotel, Hank rented a four-room house that had two living rooms for the whole family to stay in. Every day, Olivia and Chelsea thought of ways to get Jessica to cook. Jessica was Hank¡¯s secretary and was as busy as he was. How would she have the time to serve his mother and sister? Sometimes, Olivia did not eat out of anger and left home as well. Of course, Olivia did not actually run away from home. It was just her protesting her son marrying Jessica. way of At that moment, Olivia had not eaten yet. She missed the Hunt sisters¡¯ cooking. ¡°Serenity, can you let me in?¡± ¡°My sister is busy and has no time to chat with you. Sonny isn¡¯t home either, so you won¡¯t be able to see him. Please leave. If you want to see Sonny next time, please propose a ce in advance and we¡¯ll take him there instead for you to see him.¡± Olivia did not budge. She was vexed and just wanted to find someone to talk to. However, she was only familiar with the residents in Bright Boulevard. Now that the house renovations were smashed and there were no ns to renovate the house again, they could not live there anymore. Besides, even if she stayedthere, the acquaintances she was to meet would talk about her family¡¯s affairs. Even someone as thick-skinned as Olivia was afraid of being judged by the whole neighborhood. ¡°Don¡¯t close the door, Serenity. I won¡¯t go in. I¡¯m just here to chat with your sister. I¡¯m facing a lot of troubles now. I¡¯ll go crazy if I don¡¯t find someone to talk to.¡± Olivia descended from her pedestal and disyed a milder attitude. Chapter 741 Chapter 741 Chapter 741 Before Hank and his wife divorced, Olivia felt that her son had good taste when she saw Jessica. Not only did she not think that Hank was wrong to betray his family, she felt he was stillpetent to be able to attract a young and lovely girl like Jessical despite already being a husband and father. Only when Olivia and Jessica lived under the same roof did she realize that life with. Liberty was better. Jessica was like a pretty vase, and Olivia looked down on her. However, Jessica was exceptionally provocative and knew how to act pampered. Even if Olivia and Chelsea teamed up to deal with Jessica, they were no match for her. That fox would act like a spoiled brat in front of Hank and y the part of a pitiful maiden so he would feel sorry for her. Olivia had chest pains from feeling angry just thinking about that scene. ¡°Where¡¯s your beloved daughter? Don¡¯t you and your daughter love to get together to chitchat? Go comin to your daughter instead.¡± Olivia was silent for a moment and said, ¡°Chelsea and his husband got a call from theirpany saying that their performance wasn¡¯t satisfactory, so they don¡¯t have to go back to work after the holidays¡­ They¡¯re in a worse mood than I am.¡± Both the husband and wife became unemployed at the same time. Even if George wanted to start a new business, his mood was already affected by beingid off just before the holidays. ¡°Your brother-inw¡­¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have a brother-inw now,¡± Serenity corrected Olivia unapologetically. ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t be so heartless. Your sister and brother-inw have known each other for twelve years and married for more than three with a son. They¡¯ve only been. divorced for a few days, but you¡¯re already being ruthless. ¡°Your brother-inw also took care of your sister in the past. Yes, Hank made a mistake and betrayed your sister, but-¡® Olivia wanted to snub Serenity again out of habit, but she hurriedly swallowed her words for fear Serenity would chase her away with a broomstick. Serenity retorted coldly, ¡°My sister divorced him, so he¡¯s no longer my brother-inw. I¡¯m afraid Ms. Yates will turn around and say my sister is shameless for trying to pester her man. ¡°Even if I¡¯m heartless, I learned it from you guys.¡± Chelsea and her husband lost their jobs. Hahaha, that was great! Serenity took pleasure in their misfortune. She felt that God had finally opened His eyes and started punishing the Brown family. It was best if someone like Chelsea never found a job in the future. That served her right! ¡°Serenity, let¡¯s not talk about that anymore. I¡¯m feeling utterly remorseful. That Yates. girl can¡¯t hold a candle to your sister at all. She¡¯s a jinx, a vixen. I don¡¯t know what spell she cast over my son for him to listen to everything she says. ¡°She¡¯s just a mistress, but she has the gall to demand all sorts of things. Her family is also insatiable. They know that Hank has a high ie and asked for a huge. amount of money. They actually asked for 777,777 dors as the bride price, saying that it¡¯s a lucky number. ¡°She also requested her name to be added to the property deed, saying that¡¯s what Hank promised her. Then, she asked for a car as well¡­ She¡¯ll ruin the family with her greed.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Olivia¡¯s mouth could not stop once she started talking. ¡°The Yates family asked for such a high bride price, but when I asked them how much the dowry would be, they answered that they had spent a lot of money raising their daughter. So now that she¡¯s getting married, the bride price of 777,777 dors. can¡¯t reimburse the amount spent on raising her. Hence, no dowry.¡± Chapter 742 Chapter 742 Chapter 742 ¡°That really opened up my eyes. They¡¯re not marrying their daughter off but selling her. If they want us to give so much for the bride price, they should give at least a few hundred thousand as the dowry as well. Instead, they¡¯ll only give us a few bedding sets and an e-bike! An e-bike! ¡°She¡¯s no match for your sister. Your sister shelled out hundreds of thousands for the house renovation. You were still a freshman when your sister and Hank got married, but you used all your assets to buy your sister furniture as her dowry. However, Jessica didn¡¯t pay a penny. She only knows how to spend Hank¡¯s money.¡± Serenity sneered in her heart. ¡®My sister is better than Jessica, but Hank still cheated. on her. ¡®The Brown family deserves someone like Jessica. Now that the Browns have met the Yates family, who are even more selfish than they are¡­ Hehe. Their lives will soon be filled with excitement. ¡®I really want to live near them so I can watch the drama unfold between their families every day.¡¯ ¡°The Yates family also demanded arge-scale banquet. When the bride¡¯s rtives.e over for the reception, we have to arrange their amodation in a fancy hotel, and we¡¯ll be responsible for all their transportation and various other expenses.¡± The more Olivia spoke, the angrier she got. ¡°Hank isn¡¯t marrying a wife. He¡¯s marrying a princess! ¡°Serenity, I truly admit that I was wrong. Please persuade your sister to remarry Hank for Sonny¡¯s sake,¡± Olivia said close to a whisper, not wanting Liberty to hear. Serenity replied sarcastically, ¡°I thought you couldn¡¯t decide on behalf of your son? Ms. Yates is the head of the family now, so she has the final say. As the mother-in-w, you better shut your mouth and keep your thoughts to yourself. Otherwise, you won¡¯t even be allowed to go home in the future. ¡°Remarry? You want my sister and Hank to remarry? Sure. They¡¯ll remarry when pigs fly and hell freezes over!¡± Regret? Olivia only said that because she was no match for Jessica. Echoing Liberty, if Olivia had Jessica under her thumb, she would not havee over toin but show off. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Don¡¯t be so sure about that. Do you want to see your sister live like this for the rest. of her life? Or do you think your sister can marry someone better? Serenity, you¡¯re still young. It¡¯s not easy for divorced women to get a second chance at marriage, let alone a single mother. ¡°It might be easy for a woman divorcee with a daughter to get remarried, but it¡¯s hard. if she came with a son.¡± Olivia was trying her best to convince Serenity to persuade Liberty to start over with Hank. ¡°Even if my sister never marries again in this lifetime, it¡¯s better than remarrying Hank. Are you done talking? Move your hand away. I¡¯m going to close the door.¡± Serenity moved to close the door after getting enough updates on Hank and Jessica. ¡°Wait, Serenity, Serenity¡­ Let me in and have a seat. I came out without my phone and wallet. I don¡¯t have money to eat now. It¡¯s all because of that Yates girl. I was so angry that I didn¡¯t eat all day.¡± Olivia was still pounding on the door outside. Serenity went straight to the kitchen, took arge sd bowl, and filled it up before she opened the front door again to pour cold water on Olivia. ¡°Ah! Serenity Hunt!¡± ¡°Get lost!¡± ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m telling you, you¡¯ll be abandoned by your husband sooner orter if behave like this¡­ I¡¯ll leave.¡± you Seeing Serenity getting a broom, Olivia looked at her ex-daughter-inw, who had not. spared a single nce or word at her since the beginning. She ran away in fear when she saw Serenity returning with the broom. Chapter 743 Chapter 743 Chapter 743 After chasing Olivia away, Serenity said to her sister, ¡°If she everes again, don¡¯t let her in. Just move a stool and sit at the door, make a pot of tea, and enjoy some snacks. ¡°Think of her chatter as watching a good show.¡± As Zachary said, there was no need to bother themselves with Olivia if she did not.e to take Sonny away. Only by listening to herints could they find out how Hank and Jessica were doing. ¡°I don¡¯t even want to listen to her.¡± Liberty used her actions to prove that she really did not want anything to do with her former mother-in- law. No one knew what Olivia was thinking abouting over once every couple of days to vent to Liberty. By logic, Olivia should be afraid to let Liberty know that their family was in shambles. Yet, she took the initiative toe over and update Liberty about her son and Jessica. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. Did she think Liberty would change her mind? It wasughable. ¡°What are you cooking, Seren? I smell something burning.¡± ¡°Oh! My dish!¡± Serenity rushed back into the kitchen, but the pot was already burnt. It was all Olivia¡¯s fault! She had to start over again. After hanging out at her sister¡¯s house tillte, Serenity returned to her home in Brynfield and waited for Zachary to return from work. She spent several days like this, and then came the day of the annual dinner at York. Corporation. The dinner would start at 7:30 pm, as stated in the invitation Zachary brought back to her. In actuality, it would be starting at 7:00 pm. 2/3 The half-hour was allocated for Zachary¡¯s speech as the head of thepany. He took great pains in order to conceal his identity so as not to scare his wife. At 7:00 pm, Jasmine and her brother arrived at Brynfield. ¡°I thought you wouldn¡¯t ept Mr. Bucham¡¯s invitation.¡± Serenity opened the door to let her best friend and Drake into the house. She teased Jasmine when she saw thetter wearing a beautiful evening gown like hers. matched with a pair of stilettos and a delicate purse. Jasmineughed. ¡°The price he offered was too tempting. I can resist Mr. Bucham¡¯s face, but I can¡¯t resist the temptation of money.¡± Josh asked Jasmine to be his plus one, saying that they were somewhat friends after going on a blind date and sharing meals often. He also asked her to be his shield by acting as his girlfriend. Jasmine refused. However, Josh told her to think of it as a job as he was paying her to y the role. Even Jasmine, who was notcking money, could not resist being enticed by Josh¡¯s offer since the price was too high, and she ultimately chose to act as his female.panion. Both women were dressed in makeup and high heels, so it was hard to drive. Drake had to act as a chauffeur for the pair of best friends. Zachary wanted toe back to pick Serenity up, but she refused, thinking that it was tiring for him to go back and forth. ¡°If he were to offer a higher price and said he wanted to marry you, would you agree?¡± Jasmine paused before answering, ¡°No way. I want to marry based on mutual feelings, not as a transaction. ¡°I¡¯m not brave enough like you to get married out of the blue.¡± She went on a blind date with Josh and he pursued her several times before his fire extinguished. Nowadays, he asked her brother out instead. Jasmine leaned into Serenity¡¯s ear and whispered, ¡°Seren, do me a favor. Ask your husband if Mr. Bucham swings the other way. I think he¡¯s trying to get with my brother.¡± Serenity was shocked and darted a quick nce at Drake. Chapter 744 Chapter 744 Chapter 744 Jasmine and Drake looked fairly alike with both having attractive physical appearances. Drake was still young and could pass off as a high school student. ¡°That can¡¯t be. At first, everyone thought Mr. York might like men but that was false too. He even has a wife now.¡± Jasmine whispered, ¡°Maybe it¡¯s because Josh is treating my brother exceptionally well. He basically spoils Drake. He¡¯s even willing to lend Drake his most beloved sports car. You know there are two things in this world that men will never share-hist car and his wife. ¡°I just think that, well, Josh has feelings for my brother. Help me ask. If he really swings the other way, I can¡¯t let him approach Drake again in the future.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Why haven¡¯t you considered that Mr. Bucham carried an ulterior motive? His true target is you.¡± Josh wanted to appeal to Drake and get him to help. For example, if he invited Drake to dinner, Jasmine might follow because she felt worried. Jasmine was at a loss for words. Serenityughed. ¡°You¡¯ve read so many novels yet you can¡¯t recognize the tactics. men use to chase after their future wives.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine opened her mouth to retort, but she somewhat saw reason in her best friend¡¯s statement. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity and Jasmine¡¯s phones rang at the same time. Serenity answered hers first. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯m going out now. I¡¯ll reach yourpany in about ten minutes. Wait for me at the entrance.¡± On the other side, Jasmine said to Josh, ¡°Since I¡¯ve epted your money, don¡¯t worry about me not doing my job, Mr. Bucham. With me around today, none of the female employees in yourpany will be able toy a hand on you!¡± Joshughed. ¡°How domineering!¡± As expected of the femalepanion whom he spent a lot of money to coax. ¡°I¡¯ll arrange a driver to pick you up,¡± Josh said thoughtfully. ¡°No need, I asked Drake to send Seren and me over. He¡¯ll pick me up after the dinner is over.¡± Josh smiled. ¡°You never give me an opportunity to perform, Ms. Sox.¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°It¡¯s not nice to trouble you because you¡¯re a very busy man, Mr. Bucham. Seren and I are heading out now. See youter.¡± ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll wait for you at the entrance.¡± Jasmine hummed, hung up the phone, and said to Serenity, ¡°Let¡¯s go, Seren. The boss is urging me. Let¡¯s go and finish the task early, then collect the bnce.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Didn¡¯t he pay you all at once?¡± ¡°He said he was afraid I wouldn¡¯t keep my word, so he gave me a deposit first. If I fail, he wants me to return the deposit a hundredfold, but if I fulfill my promise, he¡¯ll transfer the bnce into my ount.¡± Serenity felt that Josh was casting a long line to catch a big fish. Jasmine would take the bait sooner orter. Now and then while on the way to York Corporation, Jasmine urged her brother,¡± Speed up, Drake.¡± ¡°Jas, it¡¯s an after-work rush now in the city. There¡¯s a lot of traffic. How am I supposed to speed up? It¡¯s good enough we¡¯re not stuck in traffic.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Are you afraid of Mr. Bucham deducting your money if you¡¯rete?¡± ¡°I want to hurry there for a chance to catch Mr. York and his wife. Mr. Bucham said. that the CEO will show up tonight with his wife. Mr. York gives a speech every year at the annual dinner. ¡°We¡¯ll get to see him if we arrive early. Otherwise, I¡¯m afraid we won¡¯t be able to event see their bodyguards.¡± Three months ago, the two best friends followed Rachel Lowe to Wiltspoon Hotel to attend a banquet. Although they did not see Mr. York himself, they saw the backs of his bodyguards. Each one of them was so tall and bulky that the girls could not catch. a glimpse of Mr. York when he was surrounded by the bodyguards. Serenity could not help butugh. ¡°Are you still being nosy about Mr. York? What¡¯s there to gossip about? As long as he¡¯s a straight man, it¡¯s natural for him to marry a wife.¡± Chapter 745 Chapter 745 Chapter 745 ¡°I dare say the whole of Wiltspoon is gossiping about it, wanting to know the true face of Mr. York¡¯s wife and how she won his heart.¡± Jasmineughed and added, ¡°I think everyone wants to learn from her on how to conquer men. Mr. York was notoriously difficult to take down, but she seeded, which means she¡¯s the best among us women. We can learn from her the art of managing our husbands. N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org exclusive ? material. ¡°Especially you, Seren. You already have a husband, and your man is too handsome. There must be many people outside who adore him. If it weren¡¯t for his long face and serious expression all day, there would be admirers provoking you every day. ¡°You have to learn how to control your husband well from Mrs. York so your husband will only love you in his life and not cheat.¡± Serenity paused before agreeing, ¡°You¡¯re right. I have to protect my man. I wonder if we¡¯ll be able to meet Mrs. York.¡± ¡°We should be able to see her if we arrive early. With Mr. Bucham¡¯s status, I think we can ride on his coattails and get the opportunity to meet and chat with Mrs. York.¡± Serenity was tempted. When there were no feelings, she did not care if Zachary had an affair or not. She could immediately end their rtionship as husband and wife if he cheated on her. Now that feelings were involved and they were a real couple, Serenity started to care. about Zachary. What skills did Mrs. York have when managing her husband? If she was willing to share tips, Serenity had to learn so she could hold on tight to Zachary. ¡°Um, Drake, could you drive faster? Who knows when we¡¯ll get such a good opportunity again if we¡¯re late.¡± Serenity could not help but urge Drake as well. Drake, who was driving, was speechless. He was a man. Although he was still young and did not have a girlfriend yet, he listened to the two best friends talking about controlling their husbands and said in his heart, ¡®When I find a girlfriend, I can¡¯t find one who¡¯s as strong as they are. ¡®On second thought, my sister is pretty good. Serenity is good too. ¡®I might not be able to find a girlfriend like them. ¡®It¡¯s fine if I¡¯m controlled by my wife. As long as she¡¯s a good wife, it¡¯ll be my pleasure to be controlled by her.¡¯ Under thedies¡¯ urging, they finally arrived at the entrance of York Corporation before 7:30 pm. Josh was waiting at the entrance of the building. Upon seeing Drake¡¯s car, a smile appeared on Josh¡¯s face. He walked over and very gentlemanly opened Jasmine¡¯s door to reach out to her. ¡°I¡¯ll get out by myself.¡± Jasmine did not take his hand and got out of the car on her own. She often followed her aunt to banquets and was familiar with such events. Serenity had just gotten out when Zachary came out from inside. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes lit up ferociously when he saw Serenity all dolled up. He wanted to hide her and her beauty from anyone. He wanted her magnificence to blossom for him alone. ¡°Zachary.¡± Catching him staring at her, Serenity thought her dress did not look good and asked, ¡± Do I look bad in this?¡± ¡°You look good.¡± Chapter 746 Chapter 746 Chapter 746 Zachary took Serenity¡¯s hand and said in a low voice, ¡°Seren, you look stunning tonight. Come, I¡¯ll take you inside.¡± Serenity greeted Josh with a nod before following Zachary into the building. Josh wanted to take the Sox siblings in, but Drake refused and said, ¡°This is yourpany¡¯s annual dinner. I don¡¯t work here, and I¡¯m not a woman, so I can¡¯t be yourpanion. I won¡¯t go in. ¡°I¡¯ll return to take my sister home when dinner is over.¡± Josh did not want Drake to follow, but he was not obvious about it. Instead, he repeatedly persuaded Drake toe in together and was about to reach out to pull him. ¡°Mr. Bucham, since Drake doesn¡¯t want to go in, don¡¯t force him. Drake, you go hang out with your friends and I¡¯ll send you a message when I want you toe over.¡± Serenity mentioned that Josh approached Drake with an ulterior motive and his real target was her. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only However, when she saw Josh behaving enthusiastically about her brother, she could not help but still worry if Josh was gay or bisexual. She would not allow him to get too close to her brother. ¡°I¡¯ll go now, Mr. Bucham, Jas.¡± Drake hurriedly drove away. Only when his car was out of sight did Josh take Jasmine inside. ¡°Ms. Sox.¡± As Josh and Jasmine walked shoulder to shoulder, he requested in a low voice, ¡°You should take my arm.¡± Jasmine was speechless. ¡°We¡¯re already very close now. Do I still need to hold your arm?¡± ¡°Look at Zachary and Serenity. They look so close. That¡¯s what a femalepanion is like. This is so you can help me keep away the adoration of the female employees.¡± He added in a soft voice, ¡°I¡¯ll add money.¡± Jasmine bristled. ¡°You make it sound as if I don¡¯t have enough and need your money.¡± Well, she really did like his money. He gave her too much. She was an ordinary person with worldly desires, so what she liked most in life was money. ¡°I did say I¡¯d buy a wig for Drake and let him pretend to be my femalepanion, but you rejected and said I could hire you to be my femalepanion instead since you¡¯re an actual woman.¡± Hearing Josh¡¯s mutter, Jasmine immediately hooked his arm, put a smile on her pretty face, and fiercely pinched him. Her gaze swept her surroundings and saw that no one noticed her, so she immediately dropped her smile. She said viciously, ¡°Josh Bucham, are you trying to hit on my brother? I¡¯m warning. you, even if you¡¯re from the Bucham family with power and influence, I won¡¯t let you have your way with Drake. My brother is a straight man!¡± Josh was wincing from her pinch. When he heard her stern warning, he stopped, looked at her, and said in amusement, ¡°Ms. Sox, are you misunderstanding something? How could I possibly be hitting on your brother? ¡°If I like men, isn¡¯t Zachary more handsome? We have young and handsome elites in ourpany. I really don¡¯t need to hit on your brother.¡± ¡°Then why did you suggest having my brother dress as a woman to be your plus one?¡± Jasmine agreed to be Josh¡¯s femalepanion not only because he spent a lot of money to hire her, but also because he said that if she did not do him this favor, he would ask Drake to dress up as a woman instead. Joshughed. ¡°Would you be my date if I didn¡¯t say that?¡± Jasmine was dumbfounded. ¡°So you¡¯re really not gay?¡± Josh¡¯s expression darkened, and he said, ¡°Ms. Sox, you asked me if I could do it. when we went on our blind date. Although that wasn¡¯t what you meant, it¡¯s easy for a man to misunderstand and take it the wrong way when you question his abilities. ¡°Now, you¡¯re asking me if I¡¯m gay. Will you believe me if I say no? If I wanted to try it ,out with you, you, would you think of me as a rogue?¡± Chapter 747 Chapter 747 Chapter 747 Jasmine was rendered speechless by what Josh had just said. After a long while, she said, ¡°Did I ask you that during our blind date? I can¡¯t recall. I only remember you held a rose in your mouth and rode a bike there that day. ¡°You even tried to give me the rose that you held in your mouth. Fortunately, I watched you arrive, or I would¡¯ve epted the rose. Speaking of which, you weren¡¯t sincere at all. If you were, you would¡¯ve told me then that you were from the Bucham family.¡± If she knew that Josh was from the mysterious Bucham family of Wiltspoon, she would never have gone on the blind date with him. Josh grumbled in his heart, ¡®It was because I saw my boss conceal his identity to get married. Although he deceived his wife, he could examine her character. If Serenity fell in love with Zachary, he could be sure that she fell for him as a person, not because of his identity or status.¡¯ Therefore, Josh followed in Zachary¡¯s footsteps. Later, when he saw how Zachary was afraid of confessing his identity to Serenity and that she would dump him out of anger, Josh decided toe clean about his identity to Jasmine. Unexpectedly, she already knew in advance. Sure enough, Jasmine distanced herself from him and did not try to be friends. He had no choice but to take the brother-inw route. However, Jasmine¡¯s imagination was so rich that she suspected that he was hitting on Drake. If he really was gay, Zachary would never keep him by his side. ¡°You said you didn¡¯t want to marry into a rich family. I hid my identity during the blind. date because I was afraid I wouldn¡¯t even be able to see you. ¡°Ms. Sox, I went on a blind date with you out of my heart¡¯s desire. I really want to give us a shot at love.¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°Let¡¯s talk about thatter. I¡¯m here tonight on a job. It¡¯s fine as long as you¡¯re not hitting on my brother.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only He was an exceptional man who was incredibly rich. Although her family was wealthy as well, the gap between the Soxes and Buchams was rather wide. Jasmine thought of how hard her aunt had lived when she was young. She was always 2/3 rejected by the gentry. Even now, her aunt had to deal with those nobledies frequently in order to pave the way for Shawn. Jasmine sighed in her heart when she remembered her cousin who liked to follow. her around since childhood. That day, she told her aunt that Shawn had a crush on Serenity, but he did not give. up even though Serenity was married now. He continued to pester Serenity even after she had clearly rejected him. Jasmine had no idea how her aunt reprimanded Shawn after she left. She only knew that Shawn was not even allowed toe to her house anymore. He was followed by bodyguards everywhere he went, and his phone was also monitored by her aunt. Shawn could not and did not dare look for Serenity again. He was terrified, afraid that his mother would really cause trouble for Serenity. He was afraid that she would force the Hunt sisters to leave Wiltspoon so he could never see Serenity again in his life. That was until the Stone family hosted a banquet and announced the rtionship between Audrey and her nieces. Shawn had never given up in the first ce, but now he got worked up again. He felt that with an aunt like Audrey, even his mother would not be able to force the two sisters out of Wiltspoon. Rachel was troubled with this andined to Jasmine¡¯s mother in private. That was how Jasmine found out that Shawn had not given up. Shawn was a man, but he could notpare to Elisa. Ady like Elisa had unrequited love for Mr. York for many years, but when she found out that he was married, she cut off her feelings and no longer pestered him. She was much better than Shawn. ¡°I won¡¯t hit on your brother.¡± Josh said in amusement, ¡°Though I must say, your brother looks very delicate. If he wears women¡¯s clothing and a wig, he¡¯ll definitely turn into a beauty¡­¡± Jasmine pinched him fiercely again. ¡°Ms. Sox!¡± Josh rubbed the sore spot, but he continued to say, ¡°Is this your way of showing me tough love?¡± ¡°There¡¯s also a saying that violence is affection. Do you want me to get violent with you?¡± Chapter 748 Chapter 748 Chapter 748 Josh was speechless. Zachary and Serenity, who were walking in front of them, were exchanging sweet nothings. Realizing that Josh and Jasmine were not following, Serenity turned her head and noticed that the pair seemed to be arguing. ¡°Zachary, why do Mr. Bucham and Jasmine look like they¡¯re fighting?¡± Zachary nced at his friend and said lightly, ¡°No, Mr. Bucham has a good temper.¡± If the people who were suppressed by Josh before were present, they would be speechless right now. If Josh¡¯s temper wasbeled good, there would be no one in this world with a bad temper. ¡°Don¡¯t mind them. Let¡¯s go.¡± Zachary let Serenity continue holding his arm. The couple was very close. ¡°Zachary, will your CEO¡¯s wife being as well?¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°Nothing. I just wanted to see her. I wonder if I¡¯ll have a chance to talk to her.¡± She had to befriend Mrs. York first before she could ask her about her husband- managing skills. Zachary said calmly, ¡°You¡¯re a step toote. Our CEO and his wife left before your arrived. Every year, he leaves after his speech. He always says that everyone won¡¯t be able to have fun if he stays.¡± That was true. In previous years, Zachary left after giving his speech. A few of his brothers and Josh would take charge of the dinner by taking turns to host instead. ¡°We¡¯re toote?¡± Serenitymented. ¡°Jasmine and I kept urging Drake to speed up. We arrived at 7:30 pm, but we still missed them. ¡°Was the time of the invitation you gave me wrong? Or did you give us a different invitation which stated a different time because you didn¡¯t want us, family members, to hear your CEO¡¯s speech?¡± ¡°That¡¯s right.¡± Since Serenity gave him a good excuse, Zachary took advantage of it. It also saved him from having to think about how to exin the wrong time on the invitation. ¡°Did you see your CEO¡¯s wife?¡± Zachary said warmly, ¡°I saw her. She¡¯s really beautiful. As soon as she appeared, she became the most dazzling woman in the room. She hadpletely charmed our boss.¡± ¡°Is she as beautiful as Aphrodite?¡± Zachary turned to look at her and smiled. ¡°In his eyes, she¡¯s even more beautiful than Aphrodite.¡± Beauty was in the eye of the beholder. In Zachary¡¯s eyes, his Serenity was more beautiful than the goddess of beauty herself. Serenityughed. ¡°That¡¯s true. Beauty is in the eye of the beholder indeed. Since your boss loves her, he naturally thinks she¡¯s the most beautiful woman.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary leaned into her ear and whispered huskily, ¡°In my eyes, you¡¯re the most beautiful woman in the world. You look so heavenly tonight that I can¡¯t take my eyes off you. I¡¯m starting to regret a little, I shouldn¡¯t have let youe dolled up from head to toe. I want to hide your beauty and tuck you away to appreciate it all by myself.¡± ¡°Clothes maketh the man. I put on a new gown and light makeup. If my appearance didn¡¯t improve significantly, it¡¯d be a waste of all the money you spent to buy me the dress.¡± Zachary kissed her cheek. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Serenity flinched and quickly pushed him away, whispering angrily, ¡°Behave!¡± It was only after they were intimate with each other did Serenity realize how passionate andscivious he truly was. Chapter 749 Chapter 749 Chapter 749 Zachary chuckled softly. ¡°I¡¯ll be a wolf at home.¡± Serenity squeezed the back of his hand lightly, but he dotingly pulled her hand up and kissed the back of her hand. When she was about to pinch him again, he suddenly led her forward with a straight face, making her too embarrassed to pinch him again. No one in York Corporation was surprised that Zachary appeared at the annual dinner with Serenity this year. All the executives were polite to Serenity. However, Josh¡¯s femalepanion this year was switched to Jasmine, whosest name was not Bucham. This surprised everyone. The female employees who adored Josh were very sharp. When they heard Josh introduce Jasmine, they guessed she was the person Josh liked, and with eyes filled with envy and jealousy, they looked at Jasmine. Mr. Bucham actually had ady he fancied! Owned by N?velDrama.Org. He was following in Mr. York¡¯s footsteps. Although everyone looked at Jasmine with jealousy, no one dared provoke her openly mainly because they were afraid of Josh. Serenity whispered to Zachary, ¡°Looks like Mr. Bucham is very popr in yourpany. If looks could kill, who knows how many times Jasmine would have died already.¡± Zachary said faintly, ¡°Mr. Bucham holds a high position. He¡¯s young, handsome, and rich. He also looks pretty easygoing. Although with his excessive liking for gossip, he¡¯s still very much a catch.¡± Josh was speechless. Was his bossplimenting or belittling him? ¡°Do you want to go home early, Seren?¡± ¡°Can we leave early?¡± This was hispany¡¯s annual dinner, and she came as his plus one. After walking around, Serenity did not want to stay any longer. Although everyone was polite to her, she was unfamiliar with them. She could not join the conversation when Zachary and his colleagues spoke about work, so she 22 could only eat and drink. Also, everyone looked at her with odd eyes, but she could not decipher what they meant. Maybe they saw how much she was eating and were secretly thinking she was a glutton. ¡°We can.¡± He left early in previous years. This year, he stayed for more than an hour because of her. ¡°Then let¡¯s go. I¡¯m full anyway.¡± She was a foodie and loved to eat. Zachary took care of her and brought all her favorite foods to her. He hovered around her since she walked in. Zachary brushed her nose dotingly. ¡°All you do is eat. Are you full? If you¡¯re not, I¡¯ll get you more food.¡± ¡°No, I¡¯ll burst if I eat any more. Yourpany¡¯s cafeteria chefs are really good. All the food they prepare tastes great.¡± The dinner was hosted in a buffet style. There was a variety of food. Serenity tried many of them and found all of them delicious. The cafeteria chefs were qualified enough to work in high-end hotels. ¡°They weren¡¯t prepared by the cafeteria chefs, but by the chefs transferred from our group¡¯s hotels.¡± Serenity was struck by a realization. It was no wonder she thought that everything was tasty. She ate so much that she almost became a pig. ¡°Let¡¯s go home. You¡¯re full, but I¡¯m still hungry,¡± Zachary spoke meaningfully. Serenity caught the implication in his words and blushed slightly. After Zachary took Serenity away, everyone¡¯s tense nerves were able to rx, and the atmosphere changed. Mr. York, who had eaten his fill, yed with the hair of a delicate maiden in his arms. Chapter 750 Chapter 750 Chapter 750 ¡°Seren, I might have to go on a business trip.¡± Serenity looked up while still in his arms and asked in confusion, ¡°It¡¯s only a few days till yourpany¡¯s annual break, but you have to go on a business trip?¡± ¡°It¡¯s a short one to Annenburg. I¡¯ll be back in a couple of days.¡± Zachary bowed his head and kissed her forehead. His dark eyes burned as they locked on her pretty face, and he asked in a low voice, ¡°Miss me already?¡± ¡°When are you leaving? I¡¯ll help you pack your bags and send you to the airport.¡± Zachary was speechless. He thought she would miss him, but she was just confirming whether he was really going on a business trip. She then happily offered to pack his luggage and drive him to the airport. She did not even ask what the business trip was for. Zachary felt depressed. The couple tangled under the sheets several times already, so he thought their feelings were different now. However, it only seemed to be slightly better than before. She was not clingy toward him at all. It was with that kind of sorrow that a certain Mr. York flew to Annenburg to attend the wedding of an important business partner, Ben Young-Johnson, the CEO of FC & 1. CO. At the wedding, when he saw the newlyweds and heard that Jane, the bride, was pregnant with twins, Zachary felt envious. With Remy¡¯s introduction, Zachary met Laurent Lafayette from Meadspring. He heard. that Laurent was like him, taking an entourage of bodyguards wherever he went; both for his safety and to steer his admirers away. *The day after the wedding, Zachary went to FC Manor. Since Remy was the closest to Zachary, he was weed by Remy upon his arrival at FC Manor. However, Remy saw how quiet Zachary was, as if he was heavy-hearted. Remy changed the subject and said, ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s rare that you visit Annenburg. Why don¡¯t I show you around?¡± Zachary had long heard of the picturesque scenery of FC Manor. The old York residence was not inferior to FC Manor, but Zachary did not refuse Remy¡¯s proposal. ¡°Sure, Mr. Johnson.¡± Remy smiled. ¡°You came all the way to Annenburg, so I have to try my best to be a good host. If you¡¯re not in a hurry to go back, I¡¯ll show you around for the next few days and let you enjoy Annenburg¡¯s view. Personally, I find the scenic spots here. much better than the ones in Wiltspoon.¡± There were no particrly famous scenic spots in Wiltspoon whereas Annenburg was the most charming city in the province. After a moment of silence, Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯m going back soon for the holidays. I¡¯m going to take a few days off to spend time with the elders of my family.¡± The Johnsons gave him a simr vibe to his family; a harmonious family where brothers and uncles get along without any power struggles. Back then, Ben brought his beloved wife back to Meadspring and handed over FC & Co. to his third and fourth brothers. The two men were able to handle it for a period of time, but the pressure got too huge, and they begged for Ben¡¯seback. After the business with the Lafayettes in Meadspring was done, Ben returned with his wife, and the two men immediately handed thepany back to him as if it was a hot potato. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only When Zachary heard about this, he felt it was something that could happen to the York family too. He had a deep understanding of the weight that Ben had to carry on his shoulders. It was like Ben was a second Zachary. Remy smiled. ¡°You¡¯re right. We¡¯re usually very busy at work and have almost no time to spend with the family. Take advantage of the holidays to rx and spend some quality time with your elders at home.¡± Remy took Zachary out of the house and strolled around the manor. * The two of them chatted idly, with Remy doing most of the talking while Zachary listened. ¡°Mr. York, are you feeling troubled?¡± When Zachary remained silent, Remy finally asked, ¡°Mr. York, ourpanies are working together, arid we can be considered friends. If you trust me, you can speak your mind. Maybe I could be of help.¡± Chapter 751 Chapter 751 Chapter 751 Zachary took the time to answer. Seeing there was a nearby perg, he walked toward it. The fake snow around the structure gave an illusion of a winter wondend. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only There was a stone table at the center of the perg. Zachary scanned the fake snow everywhere, somehow getting the chill of December. He said to Remy, ¡°The fake snow adds a nice touch to the view.¡± It snowed in Meadspring. By now, the city would drop to freezing temperatures and be covered in a thick nket of snow. The closest thing to snowkes in Wiltspoon was fake snow. ¡°Well, it¡¯s only right to decorate during the festive season. The snow in the estate and on the ski slope is real. Can I interest you in going down the slopes?¡± Zachary faintly replied, ¡°I prefer skiing up north.¡± Remy smiled. ¡°Oh, me too. We can set a time to go together and admire the snow there. What better way to enjoy the view than up north on the slope? ¡°It looks like something is on your mind, Mr. York. If I may ask if you¡¯re down in the dumps due to a rtionship problem?¡± Although Remy was single, his keen eye picked up on Zachary¡¯s absent-mindedness during his brother¡¯s wedding. Although Zachary had published his rtionship on Facebook stories and everybody at York Corporation was aware that he was taken, Zachary had not publicly announced his marriage. Despite knowing that fact, Remy decided to y dumb until Zachary decided to go public with his marital status. Looking at Remy, Zachary asked, ¡°Is it that obvious?¡± Remy grinned. ¡°People who don¡¯t know you well won¡¯t notice it since you always keep a deadpan face but that¡¯s how you look when you have something on your mind. ¡°I can lend an ear if you feel you can trust me, but I might not be able to be of help though. I¡¯m single after all.¡± Remy did not even have a girlfriend. He once had a crush on a girl sitting in the front of the ss during his younger days. He applied to a different college after high school. He kept in touch with the girl in the beginning, but sheter got a boyfriend. That was when Remy stopped contacting her. Over the years, Remy managed the subsidiary of FC & Co. conscientiously while his love life stood nonexistent. He had not met a girl he liked or made his heart flutter. To Remy, love would happen when it was meant to be. He believed his time woulde. Love woulde when it was least expected, and it could not be forced. He was waiting to meet the girl who would enter his life out of nowhere. After a brief silence, Zachary uttered, ¡°I trust you, Mr. Johnson, but as you said, you¡¯re single and probably won¡¯t understand how torn I am feeling right now. I¡¯m hoping to speak with. your brother. ¡°Can you convey my message to Mr. Young-Johnson?¡± Remy answered with a smile, ¡°Sure thing. Do you want to meet my brother now?¡± Zachary must havee all the way to FC Manor today to meet with his brother. ¡°It depends on Mr. Young-Johnson¡¯s avability today. I know it¡¯s not a good time to bother him considering it¡¯s only a day after his wedding.¡± Zachary understood that his presence was rather untimely and inappropriate. Out of all the days, he had to visit on the day after Ben¡¯s wedding. Remy looked at the time and responded, ¡°My brother should be free. Let me ask him.¡± He then pulled out his phone and gave Ben a call. It did not take long for Ben to pick up. After Remy conveyed Zachary¡¯s wishes to see him, Ben happily agreed to chat privately with Zachary. Chapter 752 Chapter 752 Chapter 752 Ten minutester, Ben showed up at the perg. ¡°Mr. Young-Johnson.¡± Zachary got up. ¡°I¡¯m sorry to bother you.¡± Since Zachary was taking a flight back to Wiltspoon tonight, he had to steel himself and intrude on Ben with the little time he had. Ben smiled. ¡°It¡¯s fine. Do sit, Mr. York.¡± Once Zachary had taken a seat, Ben gave his brother the go-ahead, and Remy told the butler to bring out a pot of tea and snacks. ¡°I wonder how I can help you, Mr. York.¡± Blushing in embarrassment, Zachary uttered, ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s something personal. I need your advice on the matter because you and I basically rushed into our marriage.¡± Ben had no idea Zachary got married on such short notice. Remy had never informed the family of anything of that sort. Ben looked at Zachary in surprise. It was hard to believe that an aloof man like Zachary would choose the path of a whirlwind marriage. ¡°How long have you been married? Have you fallen in love with your wife?¡± Ben already had an answer in mind. Zachary would not be in turmoil, nor would he disturb Ben on the day after his wedding if the former had not fallen head over heels for his woman. ¡°We¡¯ve been married for three months. She saved my nana¡¯s life. My family was grateful for that fact and wanted to make her time worthwhile. My nana took a shine. to her I guess because there haven¡¯t been daughters and granddaughters in the family.¡± After a pause, Zachary added, ¡°You can say my family is like yours. We have more boys than girls in the family. ¡°I had not met her prior to the marriage. Heck, I didn¡¯t know who she was, but I was thankful that she saved Nana. Somehow, everything changed not too long after. Nana only spoke highly of her in front of me, hoping she could be an official member of the family.¡± With his mind harking back to his nana¡¯s daily nagging until he relented and signed the marriage papers, Zachary carried on, ¡°Out of all my brothers and cousins except the youngest two, anyone could have married her. ¡°But Nana specifically named me to marry her. I said no, of course. In fact, I was livid. I believed she was scheming and was trying to gold-dig her way to riches and power under the excuse that she saved my nana¡¯s life. Nana did try to exin that it was all her own idea. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to hear any of it and made up my mind that she was a gold digger. I told Nana many times not to be fooled, but she wouldn¡¯t listen. As the matriarch of the household, she demanded that I marry her.¡± The days leading up to the marriage were a pain in the neck for Zachary. His nana was the type who would not stop until she got what she wanted. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only As Nana had her eye on Serenity and wanted Zachary to marry her, she would drill the thought into Zachary, saying that he could repay Serenity¡¯s life-saving kindness through marriage. His refusal to marry her wouldbel Zachary an ungrateful grandson. Nana went to lengths to say that. Zachary was born into privilege. With Nana forcing him into marriage, it would only mar his impression of Serenity further. Remy poured Zachary and his brother a cup of tea each before filling his own. He indulged in the canap¨¦s and savored the tea as Zachary let everything out. ¡°And you agreed to marry the girl in the end?¡± Ben asked. Zachary nodded. ¡°My nana called me ungrateful, so my only choice at that point was to marry her. ¡°I told the girl the day we got our marriage license that we should keep our marital status under wraps since we did not marry for love. I didn¡¯t tell her that I¡¯m the heir of the York family.¡± Ben got the drift, which was Zachary keeping hush about who he was. It was just like when he had not been honest with Jane about his identity. Chapter 753 Chapter 753 Chapter 753 ¡°How have you two been getting along since getting the marriage license?¡± Ben pried. He was swept into a whirlwind marriage with Jane, but they had known each other for eleven years. At least, they were old acquaintances. Besides, Ben had his eye on Jane from the very beginning. He had repressed his feelings for her and did not show affection of any kind as she was not of age. Things changed when Jane was pressured by her family to marry¨Cshe had to hire him as a boyfriend. Ben took the chance to set Jane up and make their contractual rtionship official. He and Jane got married knowing each other, but it was different from Zachary who married aplete stranger. Ben had a yen for some hot gossip. ¡°I made it clear to my nana before going ahead with the marriage that I could marry her, but it was my business how I managed the marriage thereafter. My nana wasn¡¯t to interfere. ¡°I didn¡¯t tell my wife who I was, so I could observe her in her raw moments and see if she was as independent as Nana said she was. At first¡­ we weren¡¯t used to having each other around.¡± It even slipped his mind more than a handful of times that he had a wife. She too was not ustomed to being someone¡¯s spouse. There had been a few frictions, but they got through them throughmunication. ¡°Then you got used to having her around and developed feelings for her after spending time together? It can be scary when you get used to something or someone. They kind of grow on you.¡± It was hard to lose someone, perhaps even fearful to lose after the person had been present in one¡¯s life. Zachary nodded again. ¡°Our rtionship can¡¯t be in a better ce now. I admit that I¡¯ve fallen in love with her.¡± Well, he said he would never go after Serenity, but here he was. ¡°I¡¯m conflicted as to whether I shoulde clean to her about who I really am. Will she be angry and leave me for being honest with her? One more thing, her cousin was my admirer who publicly professed her love and pursued me. My wife even helped her cousin to win my heart because she was unaware of my identity.¡± ¡°Blegh-¡± Remy spat out a mouthful of tea. The two CEOs turned to stare at Remy. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Remy hurriedly pulled a napkin to wipe the table. While clearing his throat, Remy embarrassedly smiled and uttered, ¡°Sorry. Sorry. I couldn¡¯t help myself.¡± That was hrious of the Yorks¡® missus. She actually helped her love rival to chase after her husband. Ben was dying tough, but he was able to pull himself together unlike Remy. ¡°How close are the cousins?¡± Zachary answered, ¡°Her cousin only came into the picture recently. She¡¯s Elisa, the heiress of the Stones. Mrs. Stone had been searching for her sister, who is also my mother¨Cinw. I feel like a deer in headlights to have a cringy and clich¨¦ story happening to me in real life. ¡°My wife¡¯s close to her cousin. I showed off my wedding band to Ms. Stone, and she stopped harassing me once she realized I was married. However, it would take time before she could let go of her feelings for me. Clive met with me after catching on about me and my wife. He wants me to keep it that way because Ms. Stone might not be able to handle the truth. ¡°I want to be truthful with my wife now, but I fear she might be able to ept it. Worse still if she feels guilty and sorry for Ms. Stone since her cousin likes me.¡± Chapter 754 Chapter 754 Chapter 754 ¡°Mr. Young¨CJohnson, you¡¯ve been through this. I need your advice. How did you confess to your wife about your identity? What was your wife¡¯s reaction when she found out? What did you do that she wholeheartedly epted you without running the risk of external factors?¡± Ben finally got to the bottom of Zachary¡¯s internal conflict. Zachary did not have the guts toe clean because he feared the harm it would bring his wife. He got himself in a sticky situation with the heiress of the Stones as well. If handled wrongly, Ms. Stone might get jealous. The cousins may have a fallout or even turn against each other. It would, in turn,e between Zachary and his wife. Picking his cup for a sip of tea, Ben said, ¡°Mr. York, my situation is different from yours though. Although my wife and I jumped into marriage right away, I set her up for it. I had a crush on my wife for eleven years. I fooled her into getting a marriage license with me. ¡°In principle, we did get married in haste, but we were acquainted for eleven years. Jane did not know much about me, but I knew her well. In fact, I had an agenda of my own. ¡°You and your wife went from strangers to husband and wife, so you knew nothing about each other. I bet you were wary of your wife at the start of your marriage. You might even propose to sign a contract.¡± Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. A suspicious flush rose upon Zachary¡¯s handsome face. They walked the same path for sure. Ben was able to guess about the contract. Zachary uttered in a husky voice, ¡°I got the wrong idea about my wife and kept my guard up against her for a long time. We signed an agreement, and the content was made to restrict her¡­ The only things she was getting were our marital home and my car once our marriage ended. It was topensate for her loss of time and energy.¡± Ben asked, ¡°Does the contract still exist? Jane and I signed a contract too, but I nullified the agreement. I didn¡¯t want to be restricted by the contract now that I got our names on the marriage license.¡± It hit Zachary that he came to the right guy. He had gotten rid of the contract, so no party was bound by the agreement. ¡°I burned the contract to ashes and flushed the remains down the toilet. She won¡¯t be able to find the agreement unless she can turn back time.¡± Benughed. ¡°It sounds like what you¡¯d do.¡± He destroyed the contract and made sure no evidence was left behind. ¡°Jane was shocked when she found out about me. I didn¡¯t tell her about it. My nemesis, Yves, blew my cover. She believed she was out of my league and wanted a divorce.¡± Color drained from Zachary¡¯s face. ¡°How did you convince your wife to not go down that route?¡± Ben and Jane were the most loving and adorable couple now. They also had a baby on the way. Zachary was envious of Ben and hoped he could sessfully get through the marital crisis like Ben. He wanted to grow old together with Serenity and be surrounded by their children and grandchildren. ¡°I took practical steps to prove there was no gulf between us. I proved to her that my family epts her for who she is. I went out of my way to show that I really love her and that I could give her happiness. I supported whatever she wanted to do. I would figure out ways to sort out any issue she may have. Gradually, she trusted me more, and I became someone she could count on. ¡°Of course, I¡¯ve known Jane for over a decade, so it does be easier. You can learn from me, Mr. York, but it¡¯s not an easy path for you since it takes a long time for a rtionship and trust to grow. ¡°Your wife has to face the fact that her cousin likes you sooner orter. I think you should consider what her cousin¡¯s reaction may be. You¡¯re a capable and protective man, Mr. York. I believe you keep your wife out of harm¡¯s way. ¡°Mr. York, the truth wille out. She¡¯ll find out with time. I personally rmend that youe clean to your wife as soon as possible.¡± Chapter 755 Chapter 755 Chapter 755 ¡°It¡¯s better you tell her the truth than she realizes it or hears it from someone else.¡± Ben had been there. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Jane might not have reacted so strongly if he had been honest with her. It meant that he trusted her to bare his soul to her. Since Jane got the news from Yves¡® mouth, Jane believed Ben had no confidence in her and walked on eggshells around her. Plus, his mother¨Cinw was convinced there was a social gap between them. Worried Jane would be treated like dirt by the Johnsons, his mother¨Cinw was once against the marriage. ¡°She¡¯ll take it that you trust her if ites from your mouth, but the moment she finds out from someone else¡­ She¡¯ll be angrier by the minute, thinking the whole world but she knows about it. The deceit won¡¯t sit well with her. In fact, she¡¯ll conclude it to be ack of trust and confidence. ¡°Hell hath no fury like a woman scorned.¡± With Serenity¡¯s tempering into mind, Zachary timidly uttered, ¡°I sounded her out to see under what circumstances she would leave me. She said she¡¯ll go for divorce if I ever cheat, abuse, or lie to her multiple times. ¡°I started off with a lie, but I had to make up more stories to cover up for that one lie. I have lied to her multiple times. I even told her I was away on business to attend your wedding.¡± Ben replied, ¡°I¡¯d still rmending clean to her. I can¡¯t guarantee how your wife would react to it though. We both might be quick to sign the marriage papers, but our situations are different. ¡°Mr. York, you can¡¯t escape what¡¯s toe. You might as well face it head¨Con.¡± Zachary fell silent. ¡°Maybe you can go back and have a think about it. You can pick a good time and date and be truthful to her in a different way.¡± After much thought, Zachary thanked Ben. ¡°Thank you for your advice, Mr. Young- Johnson. I¡¯ll examine my options.¡± Ben uttered with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re all human. I¡¯m sure your sincerity will touch her heart. Besides, you¡¯re already a couple, and you¡¯ve developed feelings for each other. You¡¯re conflicted now, but she¡¯ll feel the same regardless of her decisions when she finds out who you are. It was easier to fall in love than out of it. Rarely anyone was a master of their own emotions when it came to love. Zachary expressed his gratitude to Ben once more. ¡°Don¡¯t mention it, Mr. York. You can talk to me if you encounter any more problems. Although my wedding was yesterday, I have gotten the marriage license for a while now. I¡¯ve been through it, so I have more experience than you newlyweds. ¡°I hope you can bring along your wife next time, Mr. York. I believe my wife will be happy to have a friend.¡± Zachary knew a little about Jane¡¯s history. Jane was friendly and did not put on airs like the missus of a wealthy family. It was good for Serenity to make friends with someone like Jane. ¡°I¡¯ll bring my wife for a visit if an opportunity arises.¡± Ben remarked with a grin, ¡°You can make opportunities happen, Mr. York.¡± An opportunity would not exist if Mr. York did not wish to make the trip. Zachary rose to his feet. ¡°I¡¯ve been a bother today, Mr. Young¨CJohnson. I¡¯ll take you around Wiltspoon and buy you dinner if you ever go there.¡± Ben looked at his brother and said teasingly, ¡°You can buy me dinner anytime anywhere, but if you know a nice girl, please set Remy up for a date. He¡¯s flying out of the radar by permanently staying in Wiltspoon, and I rarely fly there. I don¡¯t have many connections to introduce anyone to him. ¡°The senior of my family is worried if he¡¯ll ever meet a girl.¡± Remy was neck¨Cdeep into the gossip until he was suddenly pulled into the picture. His brother even asked Zachary to set him up on a date. Remy jumped in. ¡°Ben, Lee and Tim are single and older than I am. You should start with them, not me.¡± Ben answered, ¡°They¡¯re in Annenburg, so we don¡¯t have trouble pushing them to take the major step. You, on the other hand, are heading back to Wiltspoon after New Year. We know nothing about your social life there. That¡¯s why we need to seek Mr. York¡¯s help with it. ¡°Tim¡¯s out anyway. He¡¯s got his eye on a girl, and you¡¯ll probably get yourself another sister¨Cinw in no time.¡± Chapter 756 Chapter 756 Chapter 756 The seniors of the Johnson family were most worried about Lee and Remy. Lee and Remy had different mothers, so the age gap between these brothers was not huge. Remy was well past the statistical age of marriage among ordinary people. Many men of Remy¡¯s age were fathers of two children by now. Zachary uttered apologetically, ¡°I would help matchmake Mr. Johnson if I could, but I don¡¯t know many young girls. I might not be of much help, but I can ask my wife to keep an eye out, or I can let my nana know. She¡¯s checking out girls for my brothers anyway. I could ask her to introduce a girl to Mr. Johnson too.¡± Remy was at a loss for words. He had never met Old Mrs. York, but stories that the olddy was young at heart and broadminded had traveled far. Old Mrs. York should be credited for Zachary¡¯s marriage with Serenity. ¡°Thank Old Mrs. York for me.¡± Ben believed it would be hard for Zachary to y matchmaker for Remy. Zachary and Tim were the same kinds of people¨Cthey could not be depended on to find a girl as they steered clear of young women. The chances would increase if Old Mrs. York lent a hand. The olddy had a lot of worldly experience, and she had an eye for people. Old Mrs. York would be able to find Remy a wife for sure. ¡°My nana will be d to be of assistance.¡± The olddy loved to y matchmaker. Remy remarked, ¡°Ben¡­ shouldn¡¯t you ask for my opinion?¡± ¡°You¡¯ll be informed when a date is set up.¡± Remy was speechless. Before Ben got married, he got the family off his brothers¡® backs about marriage because he was unmarried himself. They had it easy then. Now that Ben was married, not only did Ben not ward off the urging, but he was also on Team Marriage. Ben should be pushing Lee instead. After all, Lee was a tad older than Remy. Lee would have gritted his teeth if he learned what was on Remy¡¯s mind. Zachary¡¯s mind flew to Elisa. Elisa and Remy¡­ He thought Elisa and Remy made a cute couple, but considering Elisa¡¯s undying. feelings for Zachary, it would not be appropriate to pair Elisa and Remy together. What would Remy and Ben think? After much thought, Zachary decided against suggesting Elisa. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only He thanked Ben and Remy before leaving FC Manor together with his security detail. Remy and Ben saw him off at the door. With Zachary gone, Ben said, ¡°I can¡¯t believe a guy like Mr. York would be troubled by love. He has always been decisive and doesn¡¯t waste time dwelling on things.¡± Remy chimed in, ¡°There¡¯s a lot of uncertainty when ites to love. The more he cares about his wife, the more he hesitates.¡± Ben cocked his head and looked at his brother. Sensing danger, Remy uttered, ¡°That reminds me. I need to take care of business. Got to go, Ben.¡± With that, Remy slipped away. Chapter 757 Chapter 757 Chapter 757 Zachary did not stay in Annenburg for long after leaving FC Manor. He flew back to Wiltspoon on the same day. He did not inform Serenity of his flight to surprise her with his return. While on the road, Zachary deliberated about Ben¡¯s advice. Ben suggested that hee clean to Serenity about everything. Elisa¡¯s feelings should not be in his consideration. It was Elisa¡¯s business that she loved Zachary. It was not as if Zachary flirted with her. God knew how long before Zachary could let Serenity know about his identity if he waited until Elisa let go of her feelings as Clive mentioned. Besides, Elisa meant nothing to Zachary. Why should he listen to Clive? It was only a matter of time before Serenity and Elisa¡¯s possible fallout. There was no avoiding it. Zachary should pick a special day when Serenity was happy, to be honest about who he was¡­ ¡°Jim,¡± Zachary called out solemnly. ¡°Sir,¡± Jim respectfully responded, on standby for Mr. Zachary¡¯s instructions. ¡°What days are special?¡± Jim was confused. What days were special? How special was Mr. Zachary talking about? He gave it a thought before asking to rify, ¡°Special in what way, Sir?¡± ¡°Um¡­ What days are special to lovers? Something that¡¯s easy to remember and makes someone happy.¡± From there, Jim knew Mr. Zachary was talking about the missus. He replied, ¡°Wedding anniversaries, birthdays, and Valentine¡¯s Day are asions lovers tend to celebrate.¡± Jim then added, ¡°Sir, I don¡¯t have a girlfriend or any experience in this, so I don¡¯t know if I got it right.¡± Zachary nced at him. ¡°What? Are you trying to get my help in finding a girlfriend?¡± Jim immediately uttered, ¡°Not at all, Sir.¡± It was not as though Mr. Zachary could find him a girlfriend if he asked. Old Mrs. York was the one who helped Mr. Zachary ditch the single life. ¡°Wedding anniversary¡­¡± Zachary murmured. When did he and Serenity get the marriage license again? This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. He did not seem to recall now. Uh, oh. Zachary could not even remember their wedding anniversary. He should pull out the marriage license from the safe to check the date when he got back. He intended to engrave the date in his mind so he would never forget it again. That was the day he and Serenity got married. Zachary had no idea when Serenity¡¯s birthday was either. Uh, oh. He talked about loving Serenity, but he did not even know the day Serenity was born. Zachary caught a glimpse of her birthdate when they were applying for the marriage license. However, he did not think it was important to remember. Still, he believed he saved her birthdate somewhere in his phone. Zachary immediately checked his phone for Serenity¡¯s birthday and found it, but it was in September. It was too long of a wait to be truthful about everything. Although he could not remember when he got married, Zachary knew it was somewhere in October. So, the wedding anniversary was an even longer wait. Should he try¡­ Valentine¡¯s Day then? Valentine¡¯s Day was nearing. ¡°Sir, your wedding anniversary is on the 10th of October.¡± Chapter 758 Chapter 758 Chapter 758 Jim reminded Mr. Zachary. Mr. Zachary did not pay any attention to the missus at the time, so the security team had to remember the missus¡¯s name for him. Jim and his team had to remind Mr. Zachary all the time. Jim would not count on Mr. Zachary to remember a day like the wedding anniversary. Mr. Zachary was not the least bit romantic. Zachary asked, ¡°Are you sure it¡¯s October the 10th?¡± ¡°I remember it because of the same digits.¡± It made sense to Zachary now that he thought about it. ¡°A quick check on the marriage license should confirm it.¡± Seeing that Zachary was in a better mood, Jim boldly asked, ¡°Sir, are you nning to give the missus a surprise?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Are you expecting me to throw you a surprise too?¡± Jim replied, ¡°I¡¯ll get more of a horror than a surprise, Sir.¡± Zachary shot him a re. Jim bit his tongue. Since Serenity did not receive any message of Zachary¡¯s return, she went Christmas shopping with her sister. Zachary was taking Serenity back to his family home for New Year, so Serenity should prepare some gifts for her inws. It was a polite thing to do. ¡°I don¡¯t know what they¡¯re into, Liberty, but I guess I can get some ideas of what you used to prepare for Hank¡¯s parents.¡± As Serenity and her sister only had each other for years, she was there to witness her sister¡¯s rtionship with Hank from start to finish. Serenity knew what Liberty usually gave her inws for Christmas. Liberty replied, ¡°Sounds good.¡± She had given expensive and plenty of gifts to Hank and his parents in the past. 1 2/3 Although Hank was cheap with her, he was very generous with his family. Hank wouldsh out at Liberty if she did not give enough. ¡°Dad. Dad.¡± Sitting in the shopping cart, Sonny burst out in happy screams. ¡°Mom, Dad.¡± Sonny called for Hank before turning around to tell Liberty. He even pointed Hank out. Hearing Sonny¡¯s cries, Hank took notice of Liberty and her sister. He wanted to head on over. Next to him, Jessica immediately pulled him back. ¡°What are you doing? Can¡¯t keep it together because you saw your ex¨Cwife?¡± Jessica whispered in Hank¡¯s ear before turning her attention to Liberty and her sister. Liberty had been keeping up with the weight loss program and lost another ten poundstely. Of course, she was still at a plump size at a hundred and seventy pounds. Nevertheless, shedding thirty pounds showed a definitive change in Liberty. Looking at Liberty slimming down, Jessica was reminded by the talk in the office that Liberty once had a hot body and face before walking down the aisle. It was in to see from Sonny¡¯s good looks. Sonny got his mother¡¯s beauty. Liberty did not watch her figure after marriage and became big. The fats ruined all her assets. Would Hank rekindle his feelings for Liberty if Liberty seeded in her weight loss and regained her looks? Jessica¡¯s future mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw would brag about how good Liberty was while putting Jessica down. Jessica was worried Hank would go back to his ex- wife. Liberty was once an outstanding woman. ¡°What are you saying, Jessica? I was going there to see my son. Sonny is my son, you know.¡± Hank helplessly added, ¡°Jessica, I got a divorce and gave up on Sonny¡¯s custody rights for you. Can¡¯t I give him a hug now that he¡¯s here?¡± Jessica used to be sensible and understanding. Now, Hank found her to be paranoid and fussing over the tiniest thing. Chapter 759 Chapter 759 Chapter 759 Following Hank¡¯s words, Jessica said, ¡°I¡¯m not saying you can¡¯t give your son a hug. I just don¡¯t want you to go alone. I need to be with you.¡± She intimately wrapped her hands around Hank¡¯s arm. Hank dabbed her forehead amid chuckles. ¡°Silly girl. Don¡¯t be jealous. I divorced her because I wasn¡¯t in love with her. Don¡¯t listen to my mom and sister. I won¡¯t get back. together with Liberty.¡± His mother and sister believed Liberty would be a huge help to his career since Liberty now had a wealthy aunt. Hank had to say that things were not working out for him at Waltham Electronics, but he would not leave so long as his boss did not fire him or take away his perks. He also upped the kickbacks to earn more prior to leaving thepany. Hank needed a lot of money since he was about to marry Jessica. Although Liberty weed a wealthy aunt in her life, her aunt never offered a helping hand. In fact, Liberty used Hank¡¯s money from the divorce to rent a ce to set up a restaurant. Her aunt did not contribute a single penny and had no say in where the money went since it belonged to her. It was the same thing when it came to parents giving their wealth to their children- they were not obligated to. That was why people should depend on themselves to make money.Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity and her sister watched amusedly as Jessica affectionately held Hank¡¯s arm as Hank pushed his shopping cart toward them. Was Jessica showing off her im on Hank? Only Jessica would think a two¨Ctimer like Hank was worth holding onto. ¡°Dad.¡± Seeing that his father was here, Sonny gleefully greeted him. Liberty was not too pleased. Sonny was never enthusiastic about seeing Hank like right now before the divorce. After the divorce, the little man would be very happy to see Hank. Did absence make the heart grow fonder? Hank only stopped when his shopping cart was about to bump into Serenity and Liberty¡¯s cart. He and Jessica peered into Liberty¡¯s cart and found gifts filled to the brim. There were a few wine bottles worth thousands and a few boxes of branded cigars. Pulling a long face, Hank questioned Liberty, ¡°It¡¯s just you and Sonny. Why do you need to buy so much stuff? You always spendvishly. Let me put it out there. We don¡¯t owe each other anything. Don¡¯t come to me looking for money when you¡¯ve spent it all. ¡°One more thing¨CAlthough I¡¯ve given a year¡¯s worth of alimony for Sonny in advance, you must provide me with a list of expenditures to prove the money went to my son. ¡°You can keep in contact with Jessica if you don¡¯t want to add my number. You can send the list to Jessica everyst day of the month starting next year. I can have a look¨Csee.¡± ¡°It should stop you from spending money needlessly.¡± Hank could not break the habit of criticizing Liberty. It was not something he could change even after the divorce. There were a lot of expensive items in Liberty¡¯s shopping cart. The total amount was roughly more than ten thousand dors. It hurt Hank to see his money disappear. Worse, he had to give a million to Liberty, and thetter was spending it everywhere. The mother and son did not require a lot for Christmas. Even if the items were gifts for someone else, who could Liberty give them to? It was only the Stone family. As the second wealthiest family in Wiltspoon, the Stones had everything they needed. Liberty did not need to spend so much on gifts for them. Chapter 760 Chapter 760 Chapter 760 ¡°You got it wrong, Mr. Brown. I¡¯m the one buying the gifts for my inws, not my sister.¡± Serenity offhandedly added, ¡°Even if my sister¡¯s buying gifts, she¡¯s not spending your money. Nobody wants your two cents.¡± To think Hank expected her sister to make a note of every expense for Sonny¡¯s upkeep. Hank was a loser for sure! Mrs. Brown had the nerve to persuade Liberty to get back together with Hank. Did Mrs. Brown think her son was thest man left on earth? It was freaking hrious. ¡°Yours? Why are you getting your inws so much?¡± Hank was surprised. He thought the sisters would be preparing gifts for the Stones. It never crossed his mind that Serenity was getting gifts for her inws. Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Tch. Serenity turned out to be quite generous. Come to think about it, where did Serenity get the money from? Did she ask her sister for money to buy Christmas gifts? ¡°I can get as many as I want. It¡¯s none of your business. You can let thedy next to you know if you¡¯re jealous. Tell her to learn from me and be generous to spend some cash on the inws. Only the best for the inws, am I right?¡± Hank turned to Jessica. Jessica was fuming. She had a bit of savings since she had been in the workforce for many years. Her parents and brothers knew nothing about it, and Jessica wanted to keep it that way in case her parents would take her money to give to her brothers. Jessica would not even spend her money on her family, so why would she splurge on the Browns? ¡°Hank and I aren¡¯t married. I¡¯m not part of the Brown family yet.¡± As Jessica was reluctant to present her inws with gifts, she stuck to her story that she had not married into the family yet. Liberty nced at Hank and curled a fake smile. ¡°I¡¯d give your parents and sister expensive gifts even before we were married. Your parents praised me, calling me sensible and well¨Cmannered.¡± In other words, Jessica was not sensible and well¨Cmannered to skimp on the gifts. Jessica felt a rush of blood to her head. The fat cow was taunting her. She snapped a biting remark, ¡°Well, you may be sensible and well¨Cmannered, but Hank dumped you anyway.¡± Unfazed by the sarcasm, Liberty smiled. ¡°I wasn¡¯t dumped. I asked for a divorce because he was tainted. Ms. Yates, I should thank you. I wouldn¡¯t be able to get rid of him if you didn¡¯t take over. You got him, and I got a wad of cash out of it. I¡¯m living the life now. ¡°Life has never been better!¡± Liberty had it easy after leaving Hank. At least, she no longer had to wait on Hank¡¯s hand and foot or deal with her parents-inw. She escaped her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw¡¯s nitpicking. With the Browns¡® charactersing to mind, Jessica had to admit that Liberty did the right thing by leaving Hank and staying away from his family. ¡°Hank and I are getting married on Valentine¡¯s Day.¡± Changing the topic, Jessica began bragging to Liberty about getting her happy ending with Hank. ¡°Hank¡¯s giving my parents a lump sum of 777,777 dors. You tore the previous house down, but it¡¯s a good thing because I didn¡¯t like the design. I¡¯m going to have our marital home renovated. Hank said my name will be on the title deed. ¡°I¡¯ll have ess to his bank ount too, unlike you who had to split everything.¡± Chapter 761 Chapter 761 Chapter 761 Curling her lips, Liberty said, ¡°I heard things aren¡¯t going well for both of you at work. One of these days, you might just find yourselves without a job. You¡¯ll only have ess to an empty bank ount. What¡¯s there to brag about? ¡°Although we paid for our half of the expenses, I got a million bucks off him during the divorce. My life with my son won¡¯t be affected even when he¡¯s out of employment.¡± Jessica was lost for words. Hank pulled a sour face. ¡°What do you mean by out of employment? We¡¯re doing fine at our jobs, thank you very much.¡± Serenity chimed in, ¡°Your mom said otherwise. She¡¯s been at my sister¡¯s ce nearly every day to rant about a mistress having you under a spell. She said Ms. Yates¡¯s a prodigal who doesn¡¯t care that money doesn¡¯t grow on trees. Your mom evenmented that Ms. Yates¡¯s parents are selling their daughter instead of marrying off their daughter. Apparently, her family is money hungry.¡± Jessica scowled. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Agreeing that the Yates family was demanding a lot, Hank did not refute it. Hank could afford the Yateses¡® wedding demands, but he was reluctant to give in to all their terms because the total cost was rather high. Hank still needed to pay for the home renovation. Plus, the wedding and reception cost a lot. It made Hank think twice about offering additional financial support to the Yateses. As mentioned by his mother, he could marry into prestige with 777,777 bucks, but could Jessica bring him prestige? His mom also talked about Jessica¡¯s integrity. Jessica was cognizant that he was married with a son, yet she got involved with him anyway. Even though Hank fell for Jessica first, it took two to tango. Jessica would have handed in her resignation and stayed away unless she got her eye on him too. His mom said it was cheap of Jessica. She may be pretty, but it did not change the fact that she was a wh*re. Jessica could notpare to Liberty. ¡°Liberty, I need to get a lot more stuff. Let¡¯s carry on our shopping.¡± With her attempt to drive a wedge a sess, Serenity called her sister and pushed the cart away. Hank came over to give his son a cuddle, but he was so preupied with criticizing Liberty that he did not manage to hold Sonny. ¡°Hank, you should tell your mom off when we get back home. She shouldn¡¯t be going to Liberty. I thought she didn¡¯t like Liberty. ¡°Also, your mom shouldn¡¯t be telling the world about us and airing dirtyundry. She should know that. I wouldn¡¯t be that angry if she told an outsider, but she went to Liberty. Liberty must beughing at us. How embarrassing is that for me?¡± Jessica always thought herself to be a winner before Liberty. Hank treated her so much better than Liberty, and it gave Jessica something to brag about when she ran into Liberty. However, Mrs. Brown went to speak ill of her to Liberty, and it undermined Jessica. Liberty must be gloating. Pushing the shopping cart ahead, Hank uttered, ¡°My mom has nothing better to do. She just wants to pour her feelings out to someone, but she only knows Liberty in the city. That¡¯s why she went to her.¡± Chapter 762 Chapter 762 Chapter 762 ¡°My mom doesn¡¯t mean it. Why are you hung up on this? Jessica, if I can be honest about the bride price, I think your family is demanding a lot. I¡¯m fine with giving your family over seven hundred thousand dors if they pay for the wedding and offer other gifts of the same value. ¡°Heck, I¡¯ll be happy if they offer half the value, but your parents said they¡¯ll only be gifting a few sets of bedding and an e¨Cbike. The gifts are only less than ten thousand dors put together. ¡°I overheard your parents the day they came to meet mine that the bride price would be split between your two brothers for their home renovations and new cars. Your parents are keeping sixty thousand dors while only six thousand dors is left for you and the wedding.¡± Hank admitted that he went through the roof when he eavesdropped on how Jessica¡¯s parents nned to spend the money. He owned a fortune of around two million dors. Since more than a million dors went to Liberty, Hank had less than a million dors left. However, he went back to bing a millionaire after collecting the recent kickback and cash reward he hinted at the material supplier. Nevertheless, the money would notst with the Yateses¡® exorbitant demand. Jessica believed that her parents went too far too. The mary gift should be given to her instead. She could not believe that her parents intended to give the money to her brothers to renovate the house and purchase autos when Jessica only got a few beddings and an e¨Cbike. It was hurtful. Jessica¡¯s parents, brothers, and sisters¨Cinw usually doted on her. Now that she was about to walk down the aisle, the true colors of her parents were showing. Her parents talked about her being the favorite in the family, but all they were trying to do was to use her to improve her brothers¡® standard of living. Still, Jessica took her parents¡® side after Hank made his grievance known. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°My parents raised me and paid for my college. It was not easy for them, and they spent a lot of money on me. The mary gift is only to thank them for raising me. well. Since the money is for my parents, they can do whatever they want to do with it. Besides, it¡¯s our custom that the amount of bride price represents the love the groom has for the bride. It shows how far the groom is willing to go for the bride.¡± Hank told her off, ¡°I make money to give you instead of your brothers a better life. Think about it. We won¡¯t be able to indulge in the life we¡¯re ustomed to if I meet your parents¡® demands. ¡°What if your parents continue to ask us for money after the wedding? The money will be gone once your brothers renovate the house and buy a new car. They might look for excuses to get cash out of us. ¡°They might be captivated by the city bustle aftering here once. They could end up asking us to contribute to their rental and house purchase here.¡± Sure, Hank had a soft spot for Jessica and would spoil her. He was willing to give her his everything, but he had not lost his head. Mr. and Mrs. Yates wanted to give Jessica¡¯s brothers the best life through Jessica. ¡°My family wasn¡¯t well¨Coff. My brothers joined the workforce at a young age to pay for my college tuition fees. They had it hard and have done so much for me. I should at least repay them. ¡°We¡¯re on a high ie. We can afford it without lowering our standard of living even if we have to pay for their rental here.¡± Hank remarked, ¡°Don¡¯t you think our boss finds us eyesorestely? I don¡¯t think we¡¯ll be working there for long.¡± They might not enjoy the sry they had right now when they leave Waltham Electronics. ¡°I¡¯ll go home and have a good talk with my mom so that she stops going to Liberty¡¯s and talking about us. Mom is making a fool out of us. You should discuss with your parents to lower the asking bride price. I can do about a hundred thousand bucks. It¡¯ll give us enough money to cover our renovations. I think it¡¯s a win¨Cwin situation.¡± Chapter 763 Chapter 763 Chapter 763 R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Hank carried on saying, ¡°The house is also yours since your name will be added to the title deed. We can enjoy a nicely renovated house instead of paying for your brothers¡® home renovation for your sisters¨Cinw to enjoy.¡± Although Jessica was in on Hank¡¯s idea, she said, ¡°Are you expecting my parents toe down from their request of 777,777 dors and settle with over a hundred thousand dors? Hank, are you trying to haggle on a gift? You said you would give me the world and only want me to enjoy the best of life. ¡°You said you¡¯ll give me a grand wedding, but all you¡¯re going to offer is over a hundred thousand dors? Is this the grand wedding you¡¯re talking about?¡± Hank refuted, ¡°The going rate for bride price in Wiltspoon is tens of thousands. Most people would settle for a few thousand dors. It¡¯s not about the money here in Wiltspoon. Families here only want their daughters to have a good andsting marriage.¡± Liberty also came from a small town. The Hunts demanded a lump sum of three hundred thousand dors in family support when Liberty married Hank. However, Liberty stopped him from giving away the money, saying that these people did not deserve to ask for the gift. Yet, the Yateses demanded over double the amount. They were trying to sell their daughter. ¡°Someone in our town got hundreds of thousands in cash from the groom without asking. The family even got a house and a luxury sedan worth over a million dors.¡± Perhaps that family¡¯s daughter got the wedding of her dreams, so Jessica¡¯s parents believed the Browns were doing well and wanted more since Hank earned a lot, had a house in the city, and his parents were supported by the state pension. Jessica¡¯s family would be the talk of the town if Jessica married well. Hank said, ¡°That girl must have married a rich heir. I¡¯m not a rich heir. You can find yourself a boy with daddy¡¯s money if you¡¯re jealous.¡± Prying Jessica¡¯s grip over his arm, Hank pushed the shopping cart and walked ahead. ¡°Hank! Hank Brown!¡± Jessica was left standing there, shouting his name. Turning a deaf ear, Hank continued pushing the cart. He stopped looking around and went to check out. ¡°Take one more step and it¡¯s over between us, Hank!¡± Without a care that they were in public, Jessica shouted and threatened Hank. Many heard her screams. Even Liberty and Serenity who were picking out snacks at the snack aisle picked up on themotion. Serenity said to her sister, ¡°It¡¯s a traitmon to men. They seek after and cherish unattainable women, but once they get the women, they no longer hold the women dear. Jessica and Hank are getting along now, but once they tie the knot, I can guarantee it¡¯s going to be a rocky marriage. ¡°But I hope they can get married. The Browns need a daughter¨Cinw like Jessica to give them a taste of their own medicine.¡± Liberty picked a few snacks for her son before giving her two cents. ¡°Not all men are like that. Seren, don¡¯t be put off by my failed marriage. Well, don¡¯t let affect your marriage with Zachary. Zachary¡¯s a lot better than Hank. I can¡¯t be more pleased with him.¡± Serenity uttered with a smile, ¡°Alright, alright. I won¡¯t tar him with the same brush. Your brother¨Cinw is a good man. Oh, wait. He¡¯s the perfect man. Happy now?¡± She moaned in her mind that her sister had not seen how petty Zachary could get. Serenity would have forgotten that Zachary had been away on business for three days if he was not mentioned. He did not call or text her at all, probably because he was too busy. In fact, she did not give him a call either. While her man was away, Serenity had been having a st like a free bird and forgot all about Zachary. She should send a text message to ask the petty guy when he wasing back when she got home later. Why was he still traveling for work when Christmas and New Year were around the corner? Serenity ranted about the CEO of York Corporation in her mind,beling the man as insensitive. The company was about to close for Christmas and New Year, but Zachary still had to go away on business. What if Zachary was unable to finish the job before the festive holidays? Did that mean he could not take a vacation? Chapter 764 Chapter 764 Chapter 764 Liberty said with a smile, ¡°Zachary is a good man. Don¡¯t lump him together with men like Hank.¡± Looking into the shopping cart, Liberty remarked, ¡°It¡¯s full. Are you getting more? Why don¡¯t we stop here and take these things home? We can check what else is * needed and go from there. It would be hard carrying all the shopping bags up the stairs if they bought too much. Mrs. Lane was not around because Serenity gave her time off to spend time with her family during the holidays. Serenity gave Mrs. Lane a Christmas bonus and some gifts since Mrs. Lane had been a huge help to Serenity and her sister. Liberty also gave Mrs. Lane a Christmas bonus. Plus, Mrs. Lane received another Christmas bonus and gifts from Zachary. She could spend the festive holidays with her family without worrying about finances. She could not go wrong working for Mr. Zachary. Owned by N?velDrama.Org. The missus and Liberty were the kindest people. Apart from Mrs. Lane, Jim, who had served and remained by Zachary¡¯s side all this while, received a double Christmas bonus, a performance bonus, and Christmas gifts. He was Mr. Zachary¡¯s most¨C trusted bodyguard. Jim did the right thing by cozying up to the missus. ¡°Alright then.¡± Serenity put some snacks into the shopping cart and followed her sister to the queue to check out. Unfortunately, the sister ran into the jerk couple while in the queue. Serenity and her sister were at the front while Hank was at the back. Hank still had feelings for Jessica. After the threat from Jessica, he went back to cheer her up and fill the shopping cart with presents for Hank¡¯s family and Jessica¡¯s parents and brothers. Jessica simmered down and quit making a scene. All was rosy for the pair once more. Hank watched as Serenity and her sister pulled out the items from the cart to the cash register. The total kept going up. Although Liberty was not paying, Hank was of the opinion that his former sister¨Cinw was reckless with money. She bought a lot of stuff. Serenity took over most of the household tasks to help her sister when she was still living under Hank¡¯s roof. All she contributed was three thousand dors in living expenses. The money was nothing. She would buy some food for Sonny and fruits for the family during festive holidays. Serenity had never brought his parents wines or cigars. Yet now, she was preparing expensive gifts for the Yorks. She even brought snacks that were at a high price point. It did not sit well with Hank, but it was not his ce to say anything since Serenity was no longer his sister¨Cinw. Serenity spent tens of thousands on shopping which included alcohol and cigars. With Serenity swiping her credit card without flinching, Hank could not help but take a nce at Jessica. Although Jessica was not officially his wife yet, they were already living together. The wedding date was already set for Valentine¡¯s Day, so Jessica was his bride¨Cto- be. However, Jessica did not make any nice gestures for the uing holidays. Back then, Liberty¡­ Chapter 765 Chapter 765 Chapter 765 Peering at Liberty who was spilling on the sides despite dropping thirty pounds, Hank snapped out of his thoughts and refused to take a trip down memoryne. Serenity bought too many things for them both to carry. They let the mall concierge know before borrowing the shopping cart to push out of the store. ¡°Liberty, wait here with Sonny. I¡¯ll drive the car up.¡± Serenity¡¯s car was parked in the mall¡¯s underground parking. She needed to drive the car out of the parking lot before they could load the goods into the car. ¡°Sure.¡± Liberty was fine with the arrangement. Seeing that his aunt was leaving on her own, Sonny panicked and cried, ¡°Aunt Ser! Aunt Ser!¡± Liberty responded, ¡°Aunt Ser is driving over to pick us up, Sonny.¡± It gave Sonny the assurance he needed. He thought his aunt was going to abandon him and his mother here. Hank and Jessica soon emerged. Since they too had made a huge purchase, they asked permission from the concierge to push the cart out of the store. ¡°Darling, wait for me here. I¡¯ll retrieve the car. Jessica replied coquettishly, ¡°Of course, sweetheart. Hurry up though. I feel scared to be here by my lonely self.¡± Liberty could barf. Was there a need to unt their rtionship before her eyes? ¡°Dad,¡± Sonny called Hank. This time, Hank was able to give Sonny a cuddle and y with him for two minutes before putting Sonny back into Liberty¡¯s shopping cart. He then made his way toward the parking lot. Jessica was left behind to stare at Liberty, but Liberty did not have time for her. ¡°Liberty. Sonny.¡± A familiar voice was heard. Liberty was surprised to see Duncan here. Once Duncan was near, she asked, ¡°What brings you here, Mr. Lewis?¡± The way she saw it, a major CEO like Duncan did not belong in a mall. He could say the word, and someone would take care of his needs. There was no need for him to come all the way and shop in a supermarket. Jessica did not know who Duncan was, but the respect Liberty had for Duncan in addressing him and a quick nce at Duncan¡¯s Porsche car keys was enough evidence that the man was rich. Pricking her ears, Jessica eavesdropped on their conversation. She thought to herself, ¡®How did Liberty know such a wealthy man?¡® Did Mrs. Stone introduce them? Duncan had no impression of ever meeting Jessica, but he could feel the burn of her stare. He looked over, only to find Jessica twirling her hair and smiling at him. Jessica believed she was presenting her most charming side to him. He merely took a nce at Jessica before turning his attention back to Liberty and Sonny. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. ¡°I was driving by when I saw you at the entrance of the mall. I see you bought a lot of stuff. Are you taking these home? Do you need a ride?¡± Duncan had a keen sight. He caught sight of Liberty and her son while driving by. Liberty was speechless. Why did she always run into Duncan while he was behind the wheel every time she went out? It was a good thing she was standing two hundred meters away from the road. Otherwise, her shopping cart would probably put a dent in Duncan¡¯s car which was parked by the roadside. Duncan was traumatized by Liberty causing damages to two of his cars. Simrly, Liberty had nightmares thinking back. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis, but I¡¯m with Seren. Seren bought the items for her inws for their meeting over the holidays. Seren went to get her car in the mall¡¯s parking lot. She should be here any minute.¡± Duncan¡¯s eyes flickered. Was Zachary taking Serenity home for Christmas and New Year? Would that not blow his cover? Chapter 766 Chapter 766 Chapter 766 Nevertheless, that was Zachary¡¯s business. Duncan would not interfere in Zachary¡¯s affairs as he was only Zachary¡¯s best friend. ¡°I see.¡± Duncan took a fleeting nce at the items in the shopping cart. Zachary¡¯s wife did not take the visit to Zachary¡¯s home lightly since she bought a lot of good stuff. ¡°Sonny.¡± As always, Duncan would y with Sonny. Sonny turned his head away before Duncan could touch his hand. He asked Liberty to hold him. Knowing that her son was afraid of Duncan, Liberty picked him up. ¡°Sonny, I gave you a pinwheel. Why are you still afraid of me?¡± Sonny wrapped his arms around the nape of his mother¡¯s neck and buried his head against his mother¡¯s shoulder, refusing to meet Duncan¡¯s gaze. Did Mr. Lewis think a pinwheel could win him over? Sonny would not be taken in easily. As if he would fall for that. ¡°Come, Sonny. Let me carry you to get more beautiful pinwheels.¡± Duncan tried to take Sonny from Liberty. Sonny put up a struggle and cried, ¡°No, I want Mom. No Mr. Lewis. No pinwheel.¡± He had broken the pinwheel given by Mr. Lewis and left the remains on the ground. Mom swept the broken pinwheel away while cleaning the house. Once he got a taste of the pinwheel, Sonny was no longer attracted to it anymore. Feeling bad, Liberty said to Duncan, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mr. Lewis. Sonny¡¯s still scared of you.¡± Duncan had never once shown malice every time he bumped into the mother and son, even during the first encounter when Liberty scratched his car. However, Sonny shook at the sight of Duncan. Sonny refused to let Duncan hold him. Feeling the scar on his face, Duncan asked, ¡°Is my scar that terrifying? My mom said the scar will make children cry.¡± He did not believe it, but Sonny¡¯s reaction was a rude awakening. Duncan¡¯s appearance haunted little kids. After all these years, the scar on his face was no longer as harrowing as before. Maybe his lofty build and rugged personality could not draw Sonny close. Liberty examined his scar and remarked, ¡°People can get used to it.¡± Although it was subtle, Duncan could read between the lines. His scar was not the most pleasant sight. Still, Duncan was not offended by thement. He smiled and responded, ¡°Yes, you¡¯re right. People will get used to it. Sonny just isn¡¯t used to it. When will the renovations in your shop bepleted?¡± ¡°Probably March.¡± Duncan did the math and nodded. ¡°Not long now. I¡¯ll support your business once your breakfast ce is ready to operate. Sonny will get used to seeing me around and won¡¯t be afraid of me.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Then, he would finally have his wish to hug the little man. Liberty was lost for words. She knew her son was cute, but this was the first time a man was so persistent about being close to Sonny and holding him. Serenity drove out to the entrance and Hank was right behind her. Seeing Duncan standing with her sister, Serenity was taken by surprise. She got out of the car, said hello, and asked, ¡°Are you here to buy gifts, Mr. Lewis?¡± Duncan replied with a grin, ¡°No. The family butler will gather everything we need for the festive holidays. We don¡¯t have to worry about that. I was passing by when I saw your sister and Sonny standing here. I stopped the car and asked because I thought they might need a ride home with the things they bought.¡± Serenity nced at her sister. She got the feeling that fate drew her sister and Duncan together. They often ran into each other. It was more than a coincidence. Chapter 767 Chapter 767 Chapter 767 With Duncan¡¯s help, Serenity managed to put all her shopping haul into her car and filled it to the brim. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Serenity expressed her gratitude. Duncan smiled and replied, ¡°I¡¯m not just business partners with Mr. Lewis. We¡¯re friends too, and the close kind. You¡¯re his wife. It¡¯s only natural that I help.¡± He then turned to Sonny and added, ¡°Sonny doesn¡¯t like me and is scared of me, but I can¡¯t help but draw near and y with him every time.¡± Duncan found it amusing even though Sonny was scared to tears and burrowed himself in his mother¡¯s embrace. Sonny would think Mr. Lewis was treating him like a pet monkey. ¡°We got to go, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty carried her son into her sister¡¯s car and said goodbye to Duncan. ¡°Bye.¡± Duncan took strides to his car parked by the side of the road after Serenity started the engine. Once they were gone, Jessica nudged the grimacing man next to her. With Hank scowling, Jessica remarked, ¡°What? Are you angry that a man was all over your ex- wife? ¡°Hank, you and Liberty are separated! She¡¯s no longer your wife. What¡¯s with that face?¡± Getting a grip on himself, Hank wanted to exin his way out of it, but it was true that he puckered his brows. There was no excuse for that. In the end, he said, ¡± Jessica, I guess it¡¯s the trait of most men. Men don¡¯t see a problem finding a new love after a divorce, but their egos would be bruised if their ex¨C wives were getting some action. ¡°In other words, men don¡¯t want their ex¨Cwives to be better off.¡± Releasing the tension in her facial lines, Jessica uttered, ¡°That man must be rich. I saw his car. It was a Porsche.¡± ¡°He¡¯s Mr. Lewis, the boss of Lewis & Co. He¡¯s the youngest heir of the Lewis family. He built his company from the ground up without financial help from his family. He¡¯s worth billions. Yeah, he¡¯s rich for sure. Mr. Lewis stood up for Liberty when my mom and my sister went to get Liberty to pay back the money owed by her grandfather. ¡°Didn¡¯t you see him at the police station?¡± Jessica replied, ¡°I was focused on Mrs. Stone and her daughter.¡± She did not get a good look at Duncan. Jessica was immersed in the shock of learning that Mrs. Stone was Liberty¡¯s aunt to notice Duncan. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. ¡°Hank, I think Mr. Lewis likes Sonny. Will he slowly fall for Liberty because he took a shining to Sonny?¡± Like Hank, Jessica did not wish Liberty a happy ending in life. Liberty¡¯s pain gave them great pleasure. Jessica would be fuming if Liberty was better off after the divorce. While loading the things into the car, Hank mocked, ¡°Do you think Liberty has the looks to impress Mr. Lewis? Mr. Lewis will be thirty¨Csix next year. I bet he has seen many gorgeousdies in his lifetime, but he¡¯s still single. It can only mean that he¡¯s very picky when it came to women. ¡°There¡¯s no chance Liberty can marry Mr. Lewis. Maybe in another life when she¡¯s born into privilege. Who¡¯s to say Mr. Lewis is still around then?¡± ¡°Doesn¡¯t Liberty have a wealthy aunt? Her aunt might introduce her and marry her into money.¡± Jessica believed Liberty could not give Duncan butterflies in his stomach, but Duncan was super nice to Liberty and her son. Jessica was jealous and resentful, to say the least. Hank got into the car, buckled up, andmented, ¡°I¡¯d believe if Serenity marries. into a rich and influential family. She¡¯s young and good¨Clooking. Even though she can fight and won¡¯t hesitate to pull punches when she¡¯s angry, she has a natural grace about her. ¡°Liberty, on the other hand¡­ Ha! Even I don¡¯t think she¡¯s good enough. A man of power and wealth like Mr. Lewis will never fall for her.¡± Jessica answered, ¡°Didn¡¯t you notice Liberty has slimmed down? Mr. Lewis might have feelings for her when she shed the pounds and dress up a little. Some men have a thing for young divorcees.¡± Chapter 768 Chapter 768 Chapter 768 Hank uttered in disdain, ¡°She¡¯s still a fat cow no matter how many pounds she drops. I want to throw up just looking at her.¡± He put one hand on Jessica¡¯sp. ¡°You¡¯re the best, Jessica. I love you the most.¡± Jessica smiled in delight. Liberty had nothing on her! While on the way home with her sister, Serenity had to bring up Duncan to her sister,¡± Liberty, I think the universe is putting you two together. You¡¯re always running into him. I mean, he was driving by when he saw you and Sonny.¡± Liberty burst intoughter. ¡°That¡¯s just a coincidence, Seren. Mr. Lewis is fond of Sonny. ¡°Honestly, I have my apprehensions running into Mr. Lewis.¡± ¡°It¡¯s true that Mr. Lewis takes a shine to Sonny. I was at an Italian ce with Jasmine when we met Zachary and Mr. Bucham buying Mr. Lewis dinner. I can¡¯t believe the three of them were in the humble restaurant. Weter had dinner together. ¡°Mr. Lewis asked why I hadn¡¯t brought you and Sonny along.¡± Liberty replied, ¡°Mr. Lewis may look broad and callous, but he¡¯s sensible and a real softie.¡± That was why he took to Sonny. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. Seeing that it was Zachary, Serenity said, ¡°Your darling brother¨Cinw is calling me, Liberty. He¡¯s been away for three days now. This is the first time he¡¯s giving me a call.¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Did you take the initiative to call him? He¡¯s away on important business. You had nothing to do at home. All you did was take Sonny out to shop and dine with Jasmine. You took Sonny out and about, and now the boy has the travel bug. ¡°You didn¡¯t try to phone Zachary and show him concern. Did you ask him if he can make it back for Christmas and New Year?¡± ¡°He said he¡¯ll be back in time for the festive holidays.¡± Serenity said as she tapped to put the call on speaker. ¡°Where are you now, Seren?¡± Zachary knew Serenity was out the moment the line was connected. He could hear the engine running. ¡°I went shopping with my sister. We bought a lot of gifts. All that¡¯s left now is for you toe home.¡± Zachary was upset to find an empty house on his return. With the intensity easing on his frown, Zachary sat down on the sofa and loosened his tie. He uttered tenderly,¡± Are you on the way back? When are you arriving home? I¡¯m home. Text me when you reach the neighborhood. I¡¯lle downstairs to carry the stuff.¡± Serenity regrettably uttered, ¡°You¡¯re back? I thought you¡¯d only returnter tonight or tomorrow morning.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t want me home?¡± ¡°No. I do. I want you home. The timing¡¯s perfect. You can help carry the shopping bags.¡± Serenity believed she did not have enough fun, so she did not want her hungry wolf home too soon to drain her out. Since Zachary was aloof in personality, Serenity thought that he would act the same in the bedroom. It never crossed her mind that he was zealous and had great stamina. He was like an energizer bunny. Serenity would think twice before trying to turn him on. She was worried she might not get out of bed if she got him too excited. ¡°Am I a porter to you?¡± Zachary whined, but his tone reflected adoration. ¡°Your personal porter will be downstairs, waiting for you.¡± Chapter 769 Chapter 769 Chapter 769 Serenity responded, ¡°When are we going to your family home? I bought gifts for your family. We can go in the afternoon or tomorrow, so the stuff can stay in the car. Otherwise, we¡¯d be moving them up and down.¡± After much thought, Zachary said, ¡°We¡¯ll go tomorrow morning. I feel a bit tired since I just got back today. I should get some rest.¡± The couple had been apart for three days, and he missed her so. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. He wanted to spend some alone time with Serenity before heading to the old residence. ¡°I¡¯ll leave the stuff in the car then.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Zachary had no issue with that, but he still reiterated, ¡°Text me when you reach the neighborhood.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Serenity then asked, ¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯m hanging up now. I¡¯m driving.¡± Zachary would see her soon since Serenity was on her way home. Hence, he said, ¡± Alright. Drive safe.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Serenity then disconnected the call. ¡°Liberty, Zachary proposed to leave for his family house tomorrow. You and Sonny shoulde along. I think Nana and the others won¡¯t mind. I¡¯m notfortable with you spending the holidays by yourselves.¡± Liberty replied with a smile, ¡°Why feel that way? I¡¯m not a child. I can¡¯t go with you to your inws¡® ce.¡± ¡°Of course, you can. I married Zachary, so Zachary¡¯s home is my home. Is it wrong for my sister to spend the holidays at my ce? I was always at your ce during the holidays and even lived with you.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. Sonny and I will have a calm and quiet celebration, unlike the previous years when I had to prepare gifts for my inws. I got called out for being reckless with money if I gave too much and being arrogant if I gave too little. I got told off no matter what I did.¡± Seeing that her sister¡¯s mind was set, Serenity said, ¡°You can visit our aunt if you¡¯re bored. Jasmine¡¯s ce is an option too.¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey¡­¡± Liberty was about to say something when Mrs. Stone¡¯s call came in. She said to her sister, ¡°Speak of the devil.¡± Liberty epted Mrs. Stone¡¯s iing call. ¡°Aunt Audrey.¡± ¡°Are you out, Liberty? It sounds pretty noisy there.¡± ¡°Yeah. I went shopping with Seren. Seren¡¯s going with Zachary to his family home tomorrow, so she got gifts ready for her inws.¡± Since the stores were closed on Christmas Eve, the shopping should be done in advance. Mrs. Stone stayed quiet on the other end of the line before uttering, ¡°I called to let you know that the family is traveling over the holidays. We won¡¯t be in Wiltspoon. Don¡¯te over, or you¡¯ll miss us.¡± ¡°Oh, okay.¡± Liberty asked, ¡°Where are you traveling to, Aunt Audrey?¡± ¡°We¡¯re going to visit a few cities. We¡¯d probably be back after New Year¡¯s break. Clive is heading back two days before the office reopens.¡± ¡°When are you leaving?¡± ¡°In a bit.¡± Liberty answered, ¡°Alright, Aunt Audrey. I hope you have a great holiday.¡± ¡°Thank you. Where¡¯s Seren?¡± Chapter 770 Chapter 770 Chapter 770 ¡°She¡¯s driving. Do you have something to say to Seren, Aunt Audrey? I¡¯ll put her on.¡± Liberty was about to hand the phone to her sister when Mrs. Stone uttered, ¡°It¡¯s okay. Tell Seren to drive safely. Tell her not to put up with any mistreatments while she¡¯s at her inws. It doesn¡¯t matter who they are. You¡¯re my nieces. You deserve only the best.¡± Having found out her nephew¨Cinw was Zachary, Mrs. Stone did not know how she felt about it in the last few days. She mentioned it to her son, and her son had known about it too. However, he wanted to keep it from Elisa. Mrs. Stone did not want her daughter to know that Zachary¡¯s mysterious wife was Serenity either. Everybody was dying to find out who the missus of the York family was, not knowing that she was right under their nose. Some even got on well with the missus of the Yorks. Jasmine, for example, was into the hottest gossip about Mr. York. She was curious about who had won his heart and even wanted to know how his missus tamed him. Unbeknownst to her, her best friend was ¡®the¡® Mrs. York. The Stones decided to travel for the holidays only because they did not want Elisa to find out that Serenity¡¯s husband was Zachary. Serenity mentioned that she would bring her husband over for a visit and introduce him to the Stones. The way Mrs. Stone saw it, Serenity would not be able to bring Zachary along if the family was away and returned after the holidays. By then, Zachary would be back at work. It would be hard to make time since work took up a lot of Zachary¡¯s time. Anyway, the Stones nned to keep it from Elisa as long as they could. Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Aunt Audrey. I won¡¯t put up with any malice. Besides, my in¨C laws are really nice, and I mean all of them. We get along well. ¡°Zachary will be there too. He won¡¯t put me in the spot.¡± Mrs. Stone happily responded, ¡°I know you¡¯re a strong woman. You won¡¯t take anything lying down. I can rx knowing that. I¡¯ve never met your inws, but I went and asked around. They¡¯re very nice folks.¡± Although it was a rivaling family, Mrs. Stone had to admit that the Yorks were good people. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. It was not her daughter¡¯s destiny to be a part of the York family. Thinking about Elisa¡¯s love for Zachary, Mrs. Stone sighed in her mind. Elisa was egoistic and proud. The only man she could see as an equal was Zachary. However, Zachary married Serenity. Serenity was not a bad choice, but she had nothing on Elisa. Elisa was a more suitable match for Zachary. It was a pity¡­ God knew how Elisa would react when she learned the truth. Perhaps she could ept the fact wholeheartedly if Serenity was better than her in every way. ¡°Aunt Audrey, I¡¯ll take Zachary to see you when you¡¯re back from your travels.¡± Mrs. Stone grinned. ¡°Alright. That reminds me. I got you and Sonny some gifts for Christmas. We¡¯re about to make a move. I¡¯ll have the butler make the delivery.¡± She could send Apple cash to the sisters, but the girls would not ept it. Hence, she prepared wads of cash and sent the butler for the delivery just before the family went out. That way, the sisters could not return the money even if they wanted to because the Stones were already away. The butler would also be delivering expensive gifts to Serenity and Liberty. ¡°Aunt Audrey, we¡¯re too old for presents. You can just give one to Sonny.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care how old you are. You¡¯re still children in my eyes. If you don¡¯t want the gifts, you can dump them in the can.¡± ¡°We¡¯ll ept the gifts, Aunt Audrey.¡± How could they throw away gifts from their aunt? The gifts were a nice gesture from Aunt Audrey. After the call, Mrs. Stone handed over the presents to the butler to deliver to Brynfield. Liberty might still be staying with Serenity. Chapter 771 Chapter 771 Chapter 771 Besides the Hunt sisters and Sonny, Mrs. Stone also prepared a gift for Zachary. Although it was not possible for him to be her son¨Cinw, her niece¡¯s husband was still her in¨C law, so she was feeling a little more generous and prepared a gift for Zachary too. ¡°Mom.¡± Elisa came down the stairs, dragging her luggage behind her. Mrs. Stone hurriedly signaled for the butler to get out. She stood up, walked towards her daughter, and said with a smile, ¡°Why¡¯d you take so long to pack?¡± ¡°I had to make sure I packed everything I needed to bring, you know. Where¡¯s Clive and the rest?¡± ¡°They haven¡¯te down yet.¡± Elisa lifted her luggage and descended the final few steps of the stairs. Mrs. Stone took a few steps forward, wanting to help her bring it down, but Elisa would not let her. ¡°Mom, what did you ask the butler to do just now?¡± ¡°I prepared some gifts for Liberty and her sister and wanted him to help send them over.¡± Elisa hummed in acknowledgment, then said, ¡°Liberty didn¡¯t want toe with us, or else we could have brought her and Sonny with us. Sigh¡­ I¡¯ll have to go a long while without seeing Sonny again. Once we get back, Sonny will already be three years old.¡± ¡°In a few more days, you¡¯ll be twenty¨Cseven years old.¡± Mrs. Stone reminded her daughter. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Once the new year arrived, everyone¡¯s age would increase by one. The young would have grown up, while the old would have aged another year. ¡°Twenty¨Cseven years old is still very young, Mom. Don¡¯t nag me to get married. I haven¡¯t found a suitable man for myself. There¡¯s no rush¨CI¡¯ll marry when I¡¯m thirty. If a suitable person doesn¡¯t appear before then, then I just won¡¯t get married. I¡¯ll apany you and Dad for the rest of my life.¡± Elisa Stone had very high standards. An ordinarily talented and handsome man was not enough for her. Mrs. Stone said, ¡°Oh, you. Don¡¯t be so picky. As long as he¡¯s gentle and can tolerate everything about you, it¡¯s fine if his family status isn¡¯t quite as high as ours.¡± ¡°That won¡¯t do. If we¡¯re not of equal status and my inws try to leech off me and treat me like an ATM, what should I do then? Men with that sort of background are terrifying.¡± Mrs. Stone could not find the words to say in response. In Wiltspoon, there were quite a few families of equal status to the Stones, but those families did not have sons of marriageable age. Most of them had already married or had arge age gap between them and Elisa. Elisa was not interested in younger men. Of course, the Yorks who were not in conflict with the Stones had a few suitable sons, but Elisa Stone had once been madly in love with Zachary and had even publicly confessed to and pursued him before. The sons of the York family deeply respected their eldest brother and cousin, so they definitely would not choose Elisa. There was no other suitable option in Wiltspoon. If they turned their sights elsewhere, it would be too far. Elisa was Mrs. Stone¡¯s only daughter and could not bear for her daughter to marry far away from home. ¡°Mom, with our whole family traveling for the holidays, doesn¡¯t that mean we won¡¯t be able to meet Seren¡¯s husband? I really want to meet him though.¡± Mrs. Stone smiled and said, ¡°We¡¯re all rtives now. Isn¡¯t it going to turn out the same whenever we meet him? If you want to meet him that badly, why don¡¯t you stay home for the holidays while we go traveling? When the timees, you can ask Seren to bring her husband to meet you. What do you think?¡± Elisa immediately shook her head. ¡°Forget it. There¡¯s no rush anyway. I need the break.¡± Traveling and seeing new sights to cheer herself up would make it easy to forget Zachary. Now, when she thought about Zachary, she was not as frenzied as she was before. Meanwhile, Serenity texted Zachary the moment she drove into her neighborhood. When she stopped in front of the building she lived in, Zachary was already waiting downstairs. Together with Jim. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary stepped forward and after Serenity¡¯s car came to aplete stop, he chivalrously opened Serenity¡¯s car door for her. He was about to help her out when Serenity pped his hand away. ¡°I¡¯m not disabled nor am I old. I don¡¯t need your help to get out of the car.¡± Zachary said to her, ¡°You¡¯re unhappy when your husband is trying to be thoughtful?¡± Putting his arms around her and instead of just helping her out, he carried her from the car. Serenity blushed. Chapter 772 Chapter 772 Chapter 772 Her sister was right there, and so was Jim. His romantic gesture made her a little¡­ embarrassed. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. The moment he carried her, Serenity got a whiff of that familiar scent on his body and could not resist touching his face. Yeah, that still felt really good. Zachary was speechless. She said she did not want his thoughtfulness, but when he hugged her, she took the opportunity to take advantage of him. Wait till night fell and she- Zachary hurriedly stopped himself and halted that train of thought, lest he could not help himself. After cing Serenity on the ground, Zachary went to carry Sonny from the car. ¡°Uncle Zak,¡± said Sonny in his childish voice. As Zachary reached out to hug the little guy, he jumped straight toward Zachary. Zachary reacted quickly and caught him easily before raising him high into the air. Sonny burst intoughter. After teasing Sonny a little more, Zachary put Sonny down and stopped ying with him. He asked, ¡°Sonny, did you miss Uncle Zak?¡± Sonny nodded. ¡°Yeah.¡± Zachary had a gentle expression on his face as he bent down to kiss Sonny on both his cheeks. ¡°Uncle Zak missed Sonny a lot too.¡± Once Liberty got out of the car, he greeted her as well. Liberty responded with a smile. ¡°Ms. Hunt.¡± Jim walked over and greeted Serenity. She smiled and asked, ¡°Are you guys not going home for the holidays?¡± Most of the people in the neighborhood had returned to their parents¡® homes for New Year. Only a minority had stayed in Wiltspoon. Jim grinned sheepishly as he replied, ¡°It¡¯s expensive to go back. I can¡¯t save up much in a year and once it¡¯s New Year, I have to spend it all anyway. Every year, I¡¯m left with pretty much nothing. So this year, I don¡¯t n to go back and spend it with my parents. I¡¯m just going to transfer some money to them. That way, I¡¯ll still have a little left.¡± Still smiling, Serenity said, ¡°That¡¯s fair. Or you could also bring your parents over.¡± A regr person would only be able to save a few thousand bucks at the end of the year. With all the expenses for the festive season, money would be spent in a sh. Celebrating Christmas and New Year was not cheap indeed. After buying gifts for one¡¯s rtives, elders, and children, one also had to ount for gatherings with friends and old ssmates. Just like that, a person¡¯s money would soundlessly evaporate. Some who had children who were still studying and had tuition fees that needed to be paid had to be extra cautious about their expenditures. ¡°They don¡¯t like it here. They said they¡¯re not familiar with the people nor the environment here with no one to talk to, so it¡¯s much morefortable to stay where they are.¡± Serenity expressed her understanding. ¡°Ms. Hunt, Mr. York has asked me to help move the things from your car to his car. He said the two of you will be returning to the old residence for New Year.¡± Serenity looked toward Zachary. She did not have any particr disagreement with his arrangements. Thus, Jim removed everything from Serenity¡¯s car and then moved them to Zachary¡¯s national MPV, Some of the items were Liberty and Sonny¡¯s, so they remained in Serenity¡¯s car. Jim was done with the moving in just a few minutes. Once he was done, Zachary dug out his wallet from his pocket and opened it in front of Serenity. He took out a hundred bucks and handed it to Jim, saying, ¡°Jim, this is the moving fee.¡± Jim epted the hundred¨Cdor bill and smiled as he thanked Zachary. He then took out his own wallet and shoved the hundred dors into it. He then said to Zachary and Serenity, ¡°Mr. York, Ms. Hunt, if there¡¯s anything you need in the future, just give me a call. I can do anything as long as I¡¯m paid for it.¡± Serenity chuckled. ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll definitely give you a call if there¡¯s anything I need help I with.¡± Jim swept a lightning¨Cquick nce at Zachary and said, ¡°Then I¡¯ll make a move. I¡¯ll be around the neighborhood to see if I can get some more business and earn a little more money to usher the new year.¡± Serenity nodded. Jim walked away as if nothing was wrong. Chapter 773 Chapter 773 Chapter 773 Jim had only walked for a few minutes before he received a call from Zachary. ¡°Jim,e back. We need your help again to move stuff. This time, the things have to be moved to the eighth floor. There are quite a few things too, so the moving fee¡­ Seren, how much should we give Jim?¡± Zachary pulled the phone away as he asked Serenity. Serenity looked at all the gifts her aunt had sent over. It was too much, even if half of them were her sister¡¯s. It would take some time for Jim to move all of them alone, so she said, ¡°Ask Jim toe back first. He can take a look and name a price.¡± After dealing with him a few times, she felt she was now pretty familiar with Jim. It would be embarrassing if she gave him too little for the moving fee, but it would be a loss to give him too much as well, so she simply decided to get Jim to name a fee. Jim looked like an honest and trustworthy person and did not seem like he would charge an astronomical amount. ¡°Alright. Jim, juste over first.¡± ¡°Sure!¡± Jim happily replied. He would be able to get a few hundred bucks allowance out of his boss once again! Half an hourter. ¡°Seren, I haven¡¯t eaten yet,¡± Zachary said as he closed the door. After Jim finished moving the gifts into Serenity¡¯s ce, he sent Liberty and Sonny home and while at it, helped to move Liberty¡¯s portion of gifts from Mrs. Stone up her apartment. As for the moving fee, Zachary had paid for it in advance. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. It was pretty good. Ever since Jim hade back from Annenburg with his boss, he had managed to earn quite a bit of allowance from him. Serenity was still in the middle of organizing the gifts from her aunt when she heard him say that. She instinctively replied, ¡°I haven¡¯t eaten either. I trawled the supermarket for hours. Luckily, you came back, or else I¡¯d be super tired after moving all those things upstairs.¡± That was because she would not have thought of asking Jim for help. If Jim could hear her thoughts, he would agree, ¡°If the boss had not returned, he would not have been able to help either.¡± ¡°If you need help with anything in the future, just let Jim know. He¡¯s reliable and he charges reasonably. He does everythingpetently, too. I¡¯ll go make dinner.¡± Zachary thought that his esteemed wife would cook a delicious meal for him upon. his return from his business trip. Now, seeing his wife busily organizing the things before her, he resigned himself to the kitchen. As he did so, he took off his suit jacket and ced it on the sofa. He then unbuttoned the cuffs of his sleeves and rolled them up. ¡°You were wearing just a jacket and a shirt?¡± Zachary¡¯s movements paused and he said, ¡°I don¡¯t feel cold.¡± ¡°The weather gets colder and it rains more over the new year. It¡¯s pretty cold out. You should wear a few moreyers unless you still want to get jabbed with long needles every day. I won¡¯t care then. I won¡¯t say anything even if you go naked.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. ¡°I bought new clothes for you. They¡¯ve already been dry¨Ccleaned. They¡¯re in your dresser.¡± A smile spread across Zachary¡¯s face immediately. ¡°Seren, you¡¯re so good to me.¡± ¡°If I go shopping with my sister and don¡¯t buy at least a few sets of new clothes for you, she¡¯ll nag me. In my sister¡¯s eyes, you¡¯re more favored than her own sister.¡± Zachary walked over to Serenity and bent down. His handsome face approached hers and his warm lips covered hers. Serenity instinctively pushed him away and chided him, ¡°Be serious. Don¡¯t just kiss me without warning.¡± Just as she finished her sentence, she pulled him back and forwardly kissed his thin lips. The difference was, this kiss was a little frenzied and dazed her, unconsciously making her craving more. Her man did as she wished and picked her up to head into the bedroom. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± ¡°Call me Babe.¡± Serenityughed and sweetly called him ¡°Babe¡°. They did say absence makes the heart grow fonder. The husband and wife proceeded to experience the frenzy of reunion. In the end, the only person who came out of the room was Zachary. He entered the kitchen in great spirits, humming as he began to prepare a sumptuous dinner for his beloved wife. Chapter 774 Chapter 774 Chapter 774 Zachary finished preparing dinner after two hours. Looking at the table full of Serenity¡¯s favorite food he had personally cooked, in a rare bout of whimsy, Zachary dug his phone out to take a photo of it and posted it on his social media. Ever since hisst post, his social media had once again gone on a long hiatus. The moment the photo was posted, his friends and important clients not only speedily clicked like, they even leftments. ¡°Mr. York, can I still make it in time if Ie over now?¡± ¡°Mr. York, I¡¯m only just realizing that you¡¯re actually really good at cooking.¡± ¡°Mr. York, hurry and send some over¨CI¡¯ll help you finish it.¡± ¡°Mrs. York really is blessed. I¡¯m so jealous! I ved for you for so many years but I¡¯ve never tasted a single bite of your cooking before.¡± This was ament left by Josh. After Zachary finished posting the photo to his social media, he put his phone back into his pocket and did not see his friends¡® likes andments. He returned to the bedroom. Just then, Serenity had just finished bathing and exited the bathroom. Seeing him enter, she muttered in discontent, ¡°This is so unfair.¡± Zacharyughed and walked to her. He bent down slightly and whispered into her ear, ¡°That¡¯s because you don¡¯t practice enough, so your stamina can¡¯t keep up. We can practice more from now on. You¡¯ll be able to keep up then.¡± He immediately received a pinch from his beloved wife in response. ¡°Ouch!¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Zachary exaggerated the pained expression on his handsome face as he cried out. ¡°Honey, that¡¯s attempted mariticide.¡± Serenity loosened her grip. ¡°You sounded like a pig sent to the ughter. In the past, you didn¡¯t even frown when I did the same thing. Does it hurt very badly? If it does, I¡¯ll let you pinch me back.¡± Zachary caressed her face dotingly and said, ¡°How could I bring myself to do that? I¡¯d much rather pamper you.¡± ¡°Your words are as sweet as honey nowadays. ¡°In the past, trying to get you to speak was like getting blood from a stone.¡± Zachary saw that she had washed her hair and went to get the hair dryer. As he helped her dry her hair, he said, ¡°Back then, it was just a marriage of convenience. Now, we really are husband and wife.¡± It was not the same anymore. ¡°Is dinner ready?¡± ¡°It¡¯s ready. Once I¡¯m done drying your hair, we¡¯ll go have dinner. I made all your favorite foods.¡± Serenity felt all the tingly warmth in her heart. When he cooked, everything he made was her favorites. When she cooked, his favorites only made up half of the dishes, while the rest was her own favorites. Indeed, he gave his all to her while she only gave him half. Serenity realized that her love for Zachary was not as deep as his love for her and felt it was a little unfair toward him. She resolved to make it up to him in the future. ¡°There¡¯s so much food and all sorts of varieties too. Zachary, you haven¡¯t shown your full hand while cooking in the past, have you?¡± Serenity said as she took out her phone when they were at the dining table a few minutester. ¡°I¡¯m going to take a few photos to post on my social media and tempt everyone.¡± Zachary watched her take the photos with fondness. Serenity published the photos she took apanied by the caption, ¡°My husband¡¯s cooking skill surprised me!¡± Jasmine, who had been asked out to dinner by Josh, saw Serenity¡¯s post and immediately passed her phone to Josh for him to see. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡± Josh asked as he took the phone. He was struck speechless the moment he saw Serenity¡¯s post. That couple¡¯s posts one after another were basically a public disy of affection, spreading the love for all to see. Was that not too much?! Jasmine said, ¡°I really didn¡¯t expect the seemingly cold and aloof Zachary to be so good at cooking. He¡¯s multi¨Ctalented and he¡¯s so good to his wife. He¡¯s a model husband! I have to admit I¡¯m really envious seeing Serenity so happy.¡± Chapter 775 Chapter 775 Chapter 775 Jasmine looked at Josh as she said this. Josh immediately began feeling immense pressure. As he was bad at cooking, he had no way of presenting a table full of dishes that could rival a professional chef as Zachary had done. In his heart, he griped about his good friend. He was so exceptional that he was about to thoroughly outshine all the other single upper¨Css men. It was not easy trying to get a wife. ¡°Ms. Sox will be very happy in the future too.¡± Josh had no skill in cooking, but he felt that he would treat his wife very well. If something came out of his rtionship with Jasmine, he would definitely ensure her happiness. Jasmineughed. ¡°Who knows at present if they¡¯ll be happy in the future? Love and marriage aren¡¯t the same. Things can be super sweet while dating, but after marriage, everything returns to reality. Every single w a person deliberately hides while dating will be exposed without fail. A marriage will onlyst if they can tolerate each other to the end. ¡°Mr. Bucham, you can¡¯t cook, can you?¡± Josh replied honestly, ¡°I¡¯ve tried, but it wasn¡¯t good. I could probably make something edible at best. Jasmine, is your standard for a husband someone who has to be great at cooking and housework?¡± He no longer called her ¡°Ms. Sox¡°. He felt that after knowing each other for so long, continuing to address her that way seemed a little distant. In the past, men always wanted a wife that was good at both housework and cooking. Was that now also the standard for women to choose their husbands? It was all Zachary¡¯s fault for being outstanding. They were both men and came from upper¨Css families, so why was Zachary exceptional? He was pretty much an all- rounder. Maybe it was just that Grandma May was too good at raising her kids and grandkids that they were all raised to be excellent in every aspect. ¡°Our family chef is pretty good,¡± Josh added. Jasmine picked up a bite of food and said, ¡°I don¡¯t expect my future partner to be good at both housework and cooking. I just think that it¡¯s something everyone knows how to do, so after getting married, we could take turns cooking and I won¡¯t be so tired then.¡± ¡°To me, husband and wife should be equals. I won¡¯t pamper my husband like he¡¯s a young lord of some sort. If my other half had any sort of chauvinistic ideals, I¡¯d rather be single than serve him.¡± ¡°We have a chef at home. There won¡¯t be any need for you to cook.¡± Jasmine was speechless for a moment. ¡°Mr. Bucham, I never said I was going to marry you, so what do you having a chef at home have anything to do with me?¡± Josh opened his mouth but remained silent, unable to reply. After a moment, he said, ¡°Jasmine, wait here for me. I¡¯m going out for a bit.¡±Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Jasmine hummed in acknowledgment. Josh had gone out to buy flowers. Luckily, there was a florist nearby, and the boss of that florist was a local who was not in a hurry to close for the holidays, which was why he managed to buy a bouquet of roses in such a short amount of time. Carrying the bouquet, Josh returned and walked straight toward Jasmine. He handed the flowers to her with his ck eyes gazing straight at Jasmine. Earnestly, he said, ¡°Jasmine, after getting to know you, I¡¯vee to like you more by the day. I feel like I¡¯ve been single all this while because I¡¯ve been waiting for you toe into my life. Would you be my girlfriend?¡± Jasmine epted the flowers, put them on the table, and said to him, ¡°First, let¡¯s eat.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t give me an answer, I won¡¯t be able to stomach anything.¡± ¡°If you can¡¯t stomach anything, there¡¯ll be more for me then.¡± Josh was struck silent. Jasmineughed when she saw his speechless expression. ¡°Mr. Bucham, I don¡¯t dislike you, but if you¡¯re asking me to ept you right now and be your girlfriend, I don¡¯t feelfortable with that. Maybe we don¡¯t know each other well enough yet. I hope you can give me a bit more time to get to know you better before we define our rtionship.¡± Out of countless blind dates, only Josh left a good impression on Jasmine. She did not run from it, but she could not bring herself to ept Josh right this moment. She always felt that it was very unfair between her and Josh. Chapter 776 Chapter 776 Chapter 776 Based on the Bucham family¡¯swork, Josh was extremely clear about her entire family history stretching back eighteen generations. He even knew about how many children her grandmother had had and how many had survived to adulthood. She did not even know that. She only knew her father had four siblings and thought her grandparents had only had five children. Once, she had no idea what they had been talking about before that, but Josh mentioned her father had eight siblings. It was just that only five of them reached adulthood, while the remaining four had died when they were infants. At the time, Jasmine was struck dumb. She then returned home and asked her father, but he had no idea either. When she asked her grandmother about it, it was only then her grandmother admitted that that was the truth. In the past, living standards were bad and many people had many children, but most had at least one child who passed away. Her grandmother asked her how she knew about that. It had been her first four children who passed away. Thetter five survived and lived to be adults. That was why even her father had not known he had lost four siblings before him. This made Jasmine realize how much more powerful and terrifying than she had imagined the Buchams were. Just as she had put it to Serenity, she was as in as day to Josh¨Cthere were no secrets to speak of. On the other hand, she knew absolutely nothing about Josh. She not only felt it was unfair but also scared¨Cscared of Josh and the Bucham family¡¯s power. Thus, she liked Josh but did not dare immediately ept his suit. She thought, ¡®Let¡¯s get to know him a little better.¡® Josh felt a little disappointed but was not discouraged. He said, ¡°That¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll wait for you, no matter how long it takes. I¡¯m willing to wait until you feel like you know me really well and you¡¯re willing to be my girlfriend. I¡¯m even going to wait until you¡¯re willing to marry me and be my wife. ¡°But Jasmine, can you tell me why you¡¯re so against bing my girlfriend right now? You could get to know me better during the dating stage too.¡± Jasmine was silent for a moment before she replied, ¡°Mr. Bucham, I¡¯m afraid of your family and its power. Buchams have always been mysterious and no one has ever really understood your family. You guys have always been able to dig out everything, whatever you guys want to know. ¡°Before we went on the blind date, you knew I was going, so you dug up everything you could on my family, didn¡¯t you? ¡°I feel like I have no secrets to speak of before you. I hope you can stop using your family¡¯s influence and power again to watch me and that you can interact with me like a normal person. Let me have some freedom and some secrets of my own. And when you¡¯re with me, you can just be Josh, and not Josh Bucham of the Bucham family. Can you do that?¡± Josh was just the nephew of the head of the Bucham family and was already this formidable. Would the heir of the Buchams not be even more terrifying? Jasmine felt that whoever the heir fell for was extremely unfortunate. No one wanted themselves to bepletely exposed by someone else while they knew nothing about the other person. Josh was silent.. Owned by N?velDrama.Org. He had only wanted to know more about her. That was the only reason he used his familywork to find out everything he could about her family. This was the first time he had wanted to get close to a girl, after all. He had been more meticulous than when he helped Zachary look into something. He knew everything about Jasmine and her family, no matter big or small. Normally, he would continue to pretend in front of Jasmine. Unfortunately, he had loose lips and was a bbermouth. Sometimes, he would only realize he had said something he should not have after saying it. Maybe that was how he managed to make the sensitive Jasmine feel repulsed by him. He knew it¨CJasmine clearly did feel something for him too, so why was she unwilling to be his girlfriend? The reason turned out to be that he knew too much. Chapter 777 Chapter 777 Chapter 777 While Josh¡¯s proposal had failed, elsewhere, Zachary and his wife were happily enjoying their honeymoon phase. After dinner, Serenity sat on the sofa watching television as Zachary washed the dishes in the kitchen. A life like this made Serenity feel very fulfilled and also blissful. After sitting for a moment, she got up and walked to the kitchen. Leaning on the doorway, she watched Zachary wash the dishes. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to watch TV anymore?¡± Her stare was quickly noticed by Zachary. He turned his head to nce at her before he resumed washing the dishes. ¡°I don¡¯t follow any dramas, and I don¡¯t know which ones are good. I didn¡¯t find any that I wanted to watch after flipping through the channels either. I feel like TV dramas aren¡¯t as good as they used to be. The special effects are over the top. Maybe I¡¯m just old, but anyway, I can¡¯t bring myself to watch anything.¡± Zacharyughed and said, ¡°You¡¯re so young, but you¡¯re calling yourself old already. You normallye backte at night too, so where would you have found the time to follow any dramas?¡± After a pause, he continued, ¡°I don¡¯t have time to watch TV and I don¡¯t follow dramas either, but I trust your evaluation.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°We have a film and televisionpany under our group too. I wonder if you¡¯d enjoy watching dramas from productions.¡± ¡°Forget it. I¡¯m not interested. What if I get addicted to it and just start binging on dramas all day, every day, and give up on doing anything? I still have a lot of stock I haven¡¯t used. I¡¯m better off utilizing my time to make handicrafts and earn money than to watch dramas.¡± Speaking of work, Serenity suddenly asked Zachary, ¡°Zachary, your mother rmended that I take some etiquette sses before this. Should I? Does your mom think my conduct and manners aren¡¯t good enough so that¡¯s why she suggested that I learn some etiquette?¡± Zachary arranged the washed dishes neatly and replied, ¡°There¡¯s no such thing. My mother is very satisfied with you. That day, she even wanted me to help out in the kitchen. She¡¯s biased toward you. If she didn¡¯t like you, she wouldn¡¯t help you out like that.¡± Even if his mother had a bit of dislike for Serenity, it would not affect him whatsoever. He was not a mommy¡¯s boy. ¡°My mother felt that you had a pretty good disposition. If you took some etiquette lessons, it would only improve. There¡¯s no other meaning to it. Of course, you should go only if you want to. Otherwise, no one would force you to. I think you¡¯re pretty good as you are right now. I like you just the way you are.¡± He had tried to change her, but that ended in a cold war between husband and wife. Mrs. Lane had advised him not to try and change Serenity. The reason being, the Serenity he liked was exactly the way she was right now. If he really managed to change Serenity into someone who only revolved around him, put him on a pedestal, and no longer had any opinions of her own, he would not like Serenity anymore. Therefore, he gave up on trying to change her and wanted to keep her as she was. Instead, in order to live a normal life as husband and wife with her, he kept doing things he had never done before and continuously grew out of his shorings. ¡°I don¡¯t mind taking some lessons, but it¡¯s very hard for me to find the time to do it.¡± After having been dragged to upper¨Css gatherings by Jasmine previously, Serenity knew that her conduct and manners could not even bepared to those rich youngdies. In the past, she had not cared, since she would never be part of the upper ss in this lifetime. What was the point in mimicking the behaviors of those rich young After hearing her mother¨Cinw¡¯s suggestion and seeing that her inws were all incredibly well¨C mannered, Serenity began to view the issue of etiquette seriously. ¡°You could take fewer online orders. You¡¯d be able to make the time for etiquette lessons then.¡± ¡°So you do want me to take those sses, don¡¯t you?¡± Chapter 778 Chapter 778 Chapter 778 4 Zachary finished wiping down the stove, washed the rag, and proceeded to wash his hands again. Then he turned to walk toward Serenity and stopped before her. Hisrge hands cradled her face and pinched it lightly a few times before he said, smiling, ¡°I told you, you should go only if you want to go. If you don¡¯t, then you don¡¯t. I don¡¯t mind either way.¡± Serenity grabbed his hand, walked to the balcony with him, and sat down on the swing. She leaned against his shoulder and together, they looked out at the city lights. ¡°When all the houses below are all lit up, the huge building opposite us goes all dark. They¡¯ve all gone home for New Year¡¯s.¡± ¡°Tomorrow morning, we¡¯re going back to the old residence. I¡¯ve already informed Nana and there¡¯s already a room arranged for us to stay in.¡± Zachary had his arm around her shoulders as their heads leaned against each other. That moment was full of warmth and sweetness. ¡°Seren, our old York family residence is really old. I hope you won¡¯t mind it when you¡¯re there.¡± ¡°How old is it? Is it a y tile house? Or is it a thatched cottage?¡± Zacharyughed, ¡°It¡¯s not that bad. It¡¯s just the old residence left behind by the York ancestors. Although it¡¯s maintained yearly, we can¡¯t deny it¡¯s obviously an old ce. And all of us live together there¨CI think I¡¯ve mentioned it to you before.¡± ¡°How big is the old family residence?¡± ¡°Our ancestors started doing business in the 1900s and made a small fortune then, so the old residence spreads across quite a wide area. Back then, it was considered a luxurious ce. Every family unit has its own wing, although it¡¯s all connected. We go in and out through the main entrance.¡± ¡°Is it like a mansion?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± ¡°Your old family residence was built in the 1900s and it¡¯s still livable? It¡¯s pretty well maintained then.¡± Zachary chuckled. ¡°You don¡¯t think we¡¯re very poor and that we don¡¯t have money to build other houses, so that¡¯s why everyone still lives in the old residence left behind by our ancestors?¡± Since their grandparents¡® generation, their family had moved out of Whitmore Mansion and built the Wildridge Manor. To the younger generation, Wildridge Manor was considered their old family residence, because all the cousins lived in their own vis and would only return to Wildridge Manor during the holidays. ¡°You could afford a vi and even paid for our current ce in cash. How could you be so poor as to not have money to build another house? The older generation probably kept staying there for nostalgia¡¯s sake.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°My wife is so clever. That¡¯s right. Especially Nana¨Cwhen she married into the York family, she moved straight into Whitmore Mansion, so she was feeling sentimental about the ce. She didn¡¯t want to move out, so everyone could only apany her and spend lots of money andbor every year to maintain the ce to prevent it from copsing.¡± ¡°The older generation is all like that,¡± Serenity expressed her understanding. ¡°Look, Nana came to live with us for only a few days before she ran back home. She¡¯s not used to it. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°To us, living here is great, but Nana just feels that the old residence is better. One¡¯s own shack is better than another¡¯s mansion.¡± Zachary scoffed internally. Nana only slunk back home early to avoid Mrs. Stone exposing their identities. ¡°Zachary, can we go for a walk? We¡¯ve been married for a while now, but we¡¯ve never held hands and strolled on the streets like other couples do. Most people have gone home for the holidays, so there should be much fewer people and cars on the streets now. It¡¯ll be quiet, too.¡± Zachary said fondly, ¡°I¡¯ll support you and be by your side no matter what you want to do.¡± He got up, pulling her with him. ¡°I¡¯ll go get you a jacket from the room. The temperature drops at night. It¡¯ll be cold.¡± Chapter 779 Chapter 779 Chapter 779 Serenity nodded, and also reminded him, ¡°You need to put your jacket on too. If you get sick, there are jabs waiting for you every day.¡± Zachary was speechless for a moment. ¡°With you constantly monitoring me like this every day, how could I dare let myself get sick?¡± Those few days of daily injections were enough to strike fear into him for the rest of his life. Zachary went back into the bedroom to get Serenity¡¯s jacket and put on his jacket too. Aftering out of the room, they heard a phone ring. It was not Zachary¡¯s phone but Serenity¡¯s. He saw Serenity scoop her phone out and look at it for a long while before doubtfully picking up the call. ¡°Hello. May I know who this is?¡± Zachary figured it was an unfamiliar number just by hearing her ask that question. The person on the other side of the line did not speak right away. Serenity asked again, ¡°May I know who this is?¡± ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s me.¡± A familiar voice filtered through the phone and Serenity¡¯s expression turned ugly as she was about to hang up immediately. ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t hang up! I just want to talk to you for a bit. I¡¯m not going to disturb you and go to see you. Serenity, I¡¯m about to go mad because I haven¡¯t been able to see you,¡± Shawn Lowe begged over the phone, hoping Serenity would not hang up. He endured it for a very long time mainly because he was afraid his mother would really act against Serenity in revenge, so he resisted the urge to see her even if he was going crazy from missing her. He had not dared go see Serenity at the bookshop nor call her because his mother had his phone tapped. Right now, he had spent a big sum of money to bribe one of the bodyguards who were supposed to be watching him and borrowed the man¡¯s phone to call Serenity. It had been incredibly difficult to make this call. Serenity hung up without another word. Shawn Lowe had not appeared before her for a long time, nor had he called her. She knew this was all Jasmine¡¯s effort. They thought this would make Shawn give up on her and start a new life. Unexpectedly, Shaun called her. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°Who called?¡± Zachary noticed her expression did not look good, and other than asking who the person on the line was, he did not say another word. He was curious. As he draped his jacket over her shoulders, he asked, ¡°Was it a crank call?¡± ¡°It was Shawn Lowe.¡± It could be considered a crank call. Zachary frowned. Shawn Lowe still had not given up? Mr. Lowe, Shawn¡¯s father, had tried to meet him multiple times to discuss the halted cooperation between theirpanies. He had been too busy and had not met Mr. Lowe yet. However, the discordance between York Corporation and Lowe Enterprise was clear for all to see. Mr. Lowe was under immense pressure. The conflict between Lowe Enterprise and York Corporation would not make the former copse in the short term but would still incur losses. The shareholders of Lowe Enterprise hade looking for him one by one to ask him what the hell had happened. Everything had been just fine, so how did they end up falling out with York Corporation? What really made Mr. Lowe angry was their rivals taking advantage of this situation to make their move. York Corporation put on a show of bluster to make it seem like the two groups had fallen out to be enemies, which ced overwhelming pressure on Lowe Enterprise, and with that their rivals would stir into action. What Zachary was doing was essentially borrowing the hands of another to strike at them. Zachary decided that once Serenity had fallen asleep, he would invite Mr. Lowe out to meet that very night and hint to him the real reason theirpanies were now in conflict. Lowe Enterprise was truly in a sorry state at the moment. Zachary and Josh had wanted to continue, but Josh was pursuing Jasmine and Mrs. Lowe was Jasmine¡¯s aunt. They had a good rtionship and if Zachary and Josh really drove Lowe Enterprise into bankruptcy and drowned in debt¡­ Chapter 780 Chapter 780 Chapter 780 Jasmine and Josh as a couple would probably be impossible then. For the sake of Josh¡¯s love, they would leave Lowe Enterprise with a way out. ¡°He knows you¡¯re married and that our rtionship is stable, but he¡¯s still bugging you. You even told me you guys were like siblings. If I hadn¡¯t been jealous and made a fuss, you probably still wouldn¡¯t know right now he¡¯d long had romantic feelings for you.¡± Zachary cynically poked Serenity¡¯s forehead. Serenity touched the ce that had been poked and said in defense of her innocence, ¡°I¡¯ve known him since I was young and I watched him grow up. I always thought of him as my own little cousin. Who knew he would like me? ¡°That¡¯s not my fault. I never provoked him in any way.¡± Serenity said as she hugged his arm and walked outside with him, further saying, ¡± Doesn¡¯t him liking me prove that Nana has good taste and chosen a good wife for you?¡± Zachary could not help butugh. ¡°Right, right. Nana has good taste and chose a good wife for me.¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. I¡¯m your good wife. With that bad temper of yours, only I can tolerate it. Any other woman would have raised hell a long time ago and given you the silent treatment to the end.¡± Zachary thought to himself that if it had been any other woman, he would not have gotten married. ¡°My beloved wife, you must continue to tolerate me then. We still have a long way to go in life.. I think I could live to a hundred. You¡¯ll probably live to ny¨Cfive, so you¡¯ll have to keep tolerating me for another seventy years.¡± Serenity looked at him, no longer leaning on him. ¡°So you alone can live to a hundred, and there¡¯ll be a five-year difference between our ages in the end?¡± ¡°I¡¯m older than you by five years. I¡¯ll be a hundred, you¡¯ll be ny¨Cfive. Alive, we¡¯ll be together, and even in death, we¡¯ll be together.¡± Serenity was speechless. What a selfish man he was. Could she not live to the age of hundred and he to hundred and five then? That way, they would both be centenarians. On second thought, she would be content if she could live to ny¨Cfive years old. She was not greedy. It would be remarkable if a person could even live to eighty. ¡°Zachary, how many admirers do you have?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± ¡°A countless number?¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Only one has confessed to me before. Naturally, I rejected her. I really don¡¯t know if there are any others. If they don¡¯t say anything, how would I know?¡± What Zachary said was the truth. He really had no clue as to how many admirers he had. Many people imed he had countless admirers, but the only person who had confessed to him was Elisa Stone alone. Maybe the others did not have the courage to do so. ¡°Is that admirer of yours still bugging you? I¡¯ve never heard you mention it before.¡± As the couple exited the elevator, Zachary naturally put his arm around her shoulders and said, ¡°You¡¯ve never asked. When ites to this kind of thing, I won¡¯t say a word if you don¡¯t ask me lest you get jealous.¡± ¡°I wouldn¡¯t get jealous. I¡¯m not like you. You¡¯re so narrow¨Cminded and you¡¯re always randomly getting jealous for no reason at all. Back then you even stubbornly said you¡¯ve never been jealous and that you didn¡¯t know what it felt like. Haha! You¡¯ve got to eat your words now, huh? It looks to me like you¡¯re full every day from the words you¡¯ve eaten and that¡¯s your own fault.¡± Zachary leaned his head down and lightly bit at her cheek, with his gaze tender. He admitted, ¡°I was stubborn. I fell for you long ago but wouldn¡¯t admit it, and I was so jealous but I wouldn¡¯t admit that either. Because of you, I¡¯ve done so many things I¡¯ve never done before, and I¡¯ve done so many things that backfired on myself. ¡°I think I¡¯m almost about to be burnt to a crisp from all that.¡± Serenity thought of how awkward he was at the time and felt it was pretty funny. Their rtionship was considered the love¨Cafter¨Cmarriage sort and their feelings for each other were nurtured bit by bit. They had argued, given each other the silent treatment, and misunderstood each other. Luckily, they safely survived their rtionship crises after communicating with each other and their marriage had not ended. ¡°Then, who¡¯s that admirer who confessed to you before?¡± Serenity asked, beaming with curiosity. Chapter 781 Chapter 781 Chapter 781 Zachary said without inflection, ¡°I don¡¯t remember anymore. She hasn¡¯t shown up before me as ofte.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t remember?¡± ¡°Do I have to? I don¡¯t like her, so what¡¯s the point of remembering? If I did remember and you got jealous, what should I do then? You¡¯re the person I¡¯m going to spend the rest of my life with, so I only need to remember you. To me, all other women are just passersby. I probably couldn¡¯t even remember what they looked like even if they stood in front of me.¡± Zachary was very much indifferent to women and was naturally unappreciative. In this life, he would not fall for another woman except Serenity. Serenityughed, saying, ¡°I won¡¯t get mad and I won¡¯t get jealous either. You don¡¯t have to be so defensive.¡± ¡°I¡¯m really not being defensive. I¡¯m telling the truth. Other than my rtives, you¡¯re the only one I care about. I don¡¯t care about anyone else.¡± ¡°Then we¡¯re even. Shawn Lowe may admire me but you have an admirer too.¡± Zachary wanted to say that Shawn Lowe was much inferior to Elisa Stone who had the resolution to give up when she said she would, but he swallowed the words that were at the tip of his tongue. It was probably because Shawn Lowe was young, so he took love seriously. To add to that, he had had a crush on Serenity for many years and could not give up so easily in such a short amount of time. The couple meandered along the streets as they held hands. As Serenity had said, the streets were not as bustling and crowded as they used to be. No matter if it was the number of people or cars, it was indeed much fewer. They were not the only ones on the streets¨Cas others had alsoe out for a walk after dinner with the current quietness in mind. The husband and wife talked as they walked, discussing anything at all, although most of the time, Serenity was the one speaking as Zachary listened. After strolling for more than an hour, they returned home. Zachary took advantage of the time Serenity was in the shower to sneak out to the Chapter /B1 balcony and call Josh. When Josh picked up, he said in a low voice, ¡°Josh, help me contact Mr. Lowe and get him to wait for me at the Wiltspoon Hotel. I¡¯ll go overter to have a chat with him.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you were only going to meet him after New Year¡¯s?¡± Josh asked. Without waiting for Zachary¡¯s reply, he further asked, ¡°Did Shawn Lowe bother your wifey again?¡± ¡°He still hasn¡¯t given up. He called Seren again tonight. She didn¡¯t talk to him and hung up immediately, but people can get pretty recalcitrant sometimes -the more you want to ignore me, the more I want to bother you.¡± Josh sighed. ¡°How foolish can Shawn Lowe be to try and take your woman? Fine, I¡¯ll help you contact Mr. Lowe and tell him to wait at Wiltspoon Hotel for you.¡± ¡°What time are you going over? I have to give Mr. Lowe a definite time.¡± Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll go over when Seren falls asleep.¡± ¡°What if she doesn¡¯t fall asleep?¡± ¡°I have my ways of making her fall asleep quickly.¡± Josh immediately understood and smiled knowingly, teasing, ¡°I used to think you didn¡¯t understand things like that and even wondered if I should bring you out to broaden your horizons, get some practice in, and umte some experience.¡± ¡°Get lost!¡± Zachary said angrily. Did Josh think he was an idiot? He had not been interested, but that did not mean he was not capable. Josh did not get mad even after being cursed at and even giggled on the other end of the line. Zachary hung up immediately, not wanting to pay him any more attention. Serenity was used to sleepingte and it was only a little after nine at night at the moment. Even if she tried to sleep, she would toss and turn in bed, unable to fall asleep. Zachary said, ¡°Seren, are you trying to make a stir fry?¡± ¡°It¡¯s too early. I can¡¯t sleep.¡±Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 782 Chapter 782 Chapter 782 Serenity sat up and picked her phone up. ¡°I¡¯ll watch a movie.¡± Zachary took her phone away. Then, he went to his study, picked a book at random, and shoved it into her hands. ¡°Why don¡¯t you read something? It¡¯s easy to fall asleep Owned by N?velDrama.Org. this way.¡± Holding the book he had shoved at her, Serenity looked at the title of the book and blinked. She was not seeing things wrongly, was she? This book was¡­ She flipped it open to the first page. Zachary ced her phone on the bedside dresser and turned back around to her. He was taken aback when he glimpsed the contents of the book and instinctively snatched the book away. With slight embarrassment on his handsome face, he said, ¡± I-I grabbed the wrong thing. Wait for a second¨CI¡¯ll grab a magazine for you,¡± he said as he left hastily, book in his hands. Serenity came out of her stupor andughed, ¡°Zachary, so this is the sort of person you are.¡± Zachary blushed all the way to the tips of his ears. That book had been given to him by Josh many years ago. He had never flipped through it but had never thrown it away either and was left in his study. Only when he developed feelings for Serenity that he had gone to read it in secret. Of course, he never dared let Serenity find out. A few minutester, he returned to the bedroom, empty¨Chanded. Serenity deliberately asked, smiling, ¡°Where¡¯s the magazine you said you were going to grab for me?¡± Zachary just looked at her with a burning gaze. Familiar with that predatory gaze of his, Serenity stopped smiling and hurriedly tucked the nket higher. She rolled over so her back was facing him and said, ¡°I¡¯m going to sleep. I¡¯m asleep now! Don¡¯t talk to me anymore. If I respond, I¡¯m sleep talking.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. He sat down by the bed and sensing Serenity¡¯s nervousness, he hugged her from the back and said softly into her ear, ¡°Sleep well. I said I wouldn¡¯t touch you anymore tonight, so I won¡¯t. I¡¯ll let you have a good rest.¡± Serenity rxed with his guarantee. She turned over and faced him. Meeting his still- burning gaze, Serenity could not resist pinching his face and said, ¡°You¡¯re up to something. If you¡¯re not willing to tell me, I won¡¯t ask. When the timees for when you¡¯re ready to tell me about it, I¡¯ll be all ears then.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not.¡± Zachary vehemently refused to admit it. ¡°I just want you to sleep earlier and rest well. Tomorrow, we¡¯ll be heading out early. It¡¯s quite some distance away and you won¡¯t be able to rest once we get there, so I¡¯m worried you¡¯ll get tired.¡± Serenity did not believe him, but she did not ask further since he was not willing to tell her about it. After talking to him for a while, she soon started to feel sleepy and swiftly left to be in the arms of Morpheus. Once she had fallen asleep, only then did Zachary gingerly get up and stealthily take his leave. Serenity was in slumbend but she slept fitfully. She dreamt that she had a wedding with Zachary and at the wedding, she wore a white wedding dress while he wore a ck suit. She was charmingly beautiful and he was dashingly domineering. All the guests were saying they made a handsome couple and were a match made in heaven. Just as she felt she was the happiest woman in the world, she suddenly saw her newly found cousin, Elisa. Elisa walked over, only to raise her hand and p Zachary across the face. Everyone was stunned. Even if it was just a dream, Serenity instinctively stood protectively in front of Zachary and asked why Elisa just pped Zachary. ¡°Seren, this man is a big liar. He¡¯s been lying to you since the beginning. He¡¯s a liar through and through! Don¡¯t marry him.¡± Serenity was dumbfounded. Zachary was a liar! ¡°Seren, don¡¯t marry him! Hurry up and leave him and never forgive him! He¡¯s a big fat liar who has never been true to you! He¡¯s been lying this whole time!¡± Elisa yelled furiously at Zachary as she pointed at him in Serenity¡¯s dream. She told Serenity to leave Zachary and not to marry him nor forgive him because Zachary was a liar to the core. Chapter 783 Chapter 783 Chapter 783 ¡°Zachary, are you a liar?¡± Serenity asked Zachary. Zachary just looked at her and did not answer her question. ¡°Zachary, are you really a liar?¡± Serenity raised her voice this time. Then, she woke up. Even after waking up, Serenity was still dazed. After a long moment, she came to her senses and muttered, ¡°So, it was a dream¡­ What did I dream of?¡± Turning her head to the side, she noticed the man who had painstakingly lulled her to sleep was no longer there. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°I knew he was up to something, trying to get me to sleep early. No wonder I had a nightmare like that.¡± Serenity picked up her phone to check the time and then proceeded to go back to sleep. This time, she did not dream again and slept soundly. Meanwhile, at Wiltspoon Hotel, Mr. Lowe sat in the lobby on the first floor, waiting for Zachary¡¯s arrival. He had suddenly received Josh¡¯s call earlier, notifying him that Zachary was willing to squeeze a little time out to meet him and telling him to wait at the Wiltspoon Hotel for Zachary. Mr. Lowe hurried over right after. Even after waiting at the Wiltspoon Hotel for two whole hours and still no sight of Zachary, he did not dare to even feel a lick of impatience and stayed seated on the sofa, waiting obediently. He was apanied by his wife. From time to time, Mrs. Lowe would look at the time, get up, and walk outside the hotel to look for Zachary¡¯s luxury car parade. Not seeing it, she would return to sit back down beside her husband. ¡°Darling, do you think Mr. York would actuallye over?¡± ¡°Mr. Bucham was the one who told me, so it has to be true. Mr. York is very much a man of his word. He said he would meet me here, so he definitely wille. Let¡¯s just keep waiting. If Mr. York changed his mind at thest minute, he would inform 1. us. He wouldn¡¯t let us wait here the whole night for nothing.¡± Although York Corporation was a threat to hispany at this moment, Mr. Lowe still trusted Zachary¡¯s character. Mrs. Lowe said anxiously, ¡°We don¡¯t even know how we managed to offend Mr. York in the course of our business. I still remember thest time Mr. York appeared at that dinner and even greeted Shawn. It¡¯s only been two or three months since then but York Corporation has stopped all cooperation with us and even started stealing our business. ¡°Darling, do you think someone might have turned them against us?¡± Mrs. Lowe could not, for the life of her, think of anything they had done that might have offended Mr. York. Mrs. Lowe was silent for a long moment before saying, ¡°I¡¯ve also tried asking about it. No one¡¯s tried to sow discord between us. We must have unintentionally offended Mr. York somehow.¡± ¡°How is that possible? The chances we have to see Mr. York are few and far between. Even when we get to see him, we don¡¯t get to show our faces before him. Even if we wanted to offend him, we don¡¯t even have the chance to.¡± Mrs. Lowe still felt that someone must have ndered them in front of Mr. York, resulting in the copse of their business rtionship with York Corporation. ¡°Could Shawn have done something?¡± Mr. Lowe thought of his son. Following that, he started toin, ¡°I don¡¯t know what¡¯s gotten into Shawntely. He¡¯s always absent¨Cminded and doesn¡¯t do things as seriously as before. He keeps making mistakes and the upper¨Clevel management of thepany is growing dissatisfied with him. I¡¯ve talked to him so many times but he still refuses to change. If this goes on, he might not be able to take over sessfully. He¡¯s not the only outstanding son in the Lowe family.¡± It was just that Mr. Lowe was currently the head of Lowe Enterprise, and Shawn was his son, so everyone automatically assumed¨CShawn would be the heir to thepany. Though if Shawn was not qualified, it would not matter that he was Mr. Lowe¡¯s son. What everyone kept in mind was the future of Lowe Enterprise, not family bonds. Mrs. Lowe¡¯s expression turned ugly, and said, ¡°Right now, he really¡­ I did that fully believing he would give up. I didn¡¯t expect he would turn into pretty much a zombie and handle things carelessly. He doesn¡¯t even talk to me when he gets home as if I¡¯m his enemy when I¡¯m his mother!¡± Mrs. Lowe felt incredibly pained to see her son so lovelorn. Chapter 784 Chapter 784 Chapter 784 Despite this, she continued to forcibly control him in order to stop her son from further bothering Serenity. Her son might be in a lot of pain now, but with the passing of time, he would walk out of the darkness and stop seeking pain. Time was the best medicine that healed all emotional wounds. ¡°What on earth happened?¡± Mr. Lowe was normally busy due to his work and so he did not know about his son liking Serenity. Mrs. Lowe had thought she alone could control her son and make her son give up thoroughly, so she had not told her husband about this. Mrs. Lowe sighed and said, ¡°Your son has someone he likes now.¡± Mr. Lowe said, uprehendingly, ¡°He¡¯s an adult now. Isn¡¯t that normal? Other kids started having crushes on people in their teens but there has never been such news on his end. I was even starting to worry he wasn¡¯t normal. Who does he like? Is the girl¡¯s family background not good? You wouldn¡¯t be objecting to it otherwise:¡± What Mrs. Lowe just said indicated to Mr. Lowe that his wife was not happy with his son¡¯s choice of a crush. Mrs. Lowe once again sighed heavily. ¡°You know the girl too. You¡¯ve even known about her for more than a decade.¡± ¡°I know her and I¡¯ve known about her for more than a decade? Shawn usually likes hanging out with Jasmine¡­ That little rascal hasn¡¯t fallen for his own cousin, has he? That scoundrel has wasted all his education! Close rtives can¡¯t get married,¡± Mr. Lowe protested. ¡°Where has your mind gone to? Shawn doesn¡¯t like Jasmine¨Cthe one he likes is her best friend, Serenity Hunt.¡± Mr. Lowe was stunned. Mrs. Lowe continued, ¡°Discarding the fact that Serenity¡¯s already married and has a husband, even if Serenity was still single, they¡¯re not suited for each other. Just look. at the status of us Lowes and look at Serenity¡¯s family background. Even if you take into ount that Serenity¡¯s aunt is Mrs. Stone, they¡¯re only aunt and niece. That doesn¡¯t ount for much.¡± Mrs. Stone had her own daughter too. ¡°And anyway, Serenity doesn¡¯t like Shawn that way. She¡¯s always thought of him as a little brother. After finding out he had feelings for her, she¡¯s been very distant and aloof with him. It¡¯s Shawn who can¡¯t give up and keeps bothering her. I could only threaten him with utilizing our connections to make Serenity and her sister leave Wiltspoon if he kept seeking her out. ¡°Only then did Shawn stop to look for Serenity, but he¡¯s still rebelling against me in his own way. I¡¯m doing this for his own good! He could have fallen for anybody but he just had to fall for Serenity. Isn¡¯t he just making himself the homewrecker then? It¡¯s not like the Lowes are so undesirable that he won¡¯t be able to get a wife. Why does he need to be a homewrecker and try to take someone else¡¯s wife?¡± Owned by N?velDrama.Org. Mr. Lowe was at a loss for words. It was at this moment that Zachary entered, his bodyguards following behind him. The husband and wife¡¯s conversation halted. Mr. and Mrs. Lowe stood up to greet Zachary who was walking toward them in big strides. Zachary¡¯s bodyguards followed closely behind. As they watched Zachary enter, Mr. and Mrs. Lowe once again sighed with amazement. Mr. York truly had the air of a sovereign. Every time they saw him appear, it always seemed like a royal had arrived. ¡°Mr. York.¡± The Lowes smiled. Zachary merely nced at them and directly walked past them, only saying, ¡°Follow me.¡± Mr. and Mrs. Lowe agreed in unison and had no other thoughts at that moment. They silently followed Zachary. They could not walk behind him closely either and instead had to follow behind his troop of bodyguards. Mrs. Lowe saw that Zachary¡¯s expression was flinty and felt that it meant nothing good. It was terrifying. It really felt like they were about to die but had no clue how they would die. Chapter 785 Chapter 785 Chapter 785 Zachary headed straight to his penthouse suite on the top floor of Wiltspoon Hotel. After a couple of minutes, the Lowe couple knocked and entered under his bodyguards¡® lead. Zachary invited them to have a seat. ¡°Thank you, Mr. York.¡± The pair of husband and wife thanked him. Only then did they dare to sit down opposite him. After sitting down, they did not dare speak¨Cmainly because they did not even know what they should say. Theypletely did not understand why Zachary wanted to meet them and had not the slightest inkling what he wanted to talk about. Zachary did not want to waste time on this and took the initiative. Without beating around the bush, he said, ¡°Mr. Lowe, I asked you to meet me here primarily to tell you to keep your son, Shawn Lowe, under control so that he stops bothering my wife.¡± Hearing that, both Mr. and Mrs. Lowe paled. Mrs. Lowe stammered, ¡°Mr. York, t¨Ct¨Cthere must be some sort of misunderstanding here. Our Shawn has someone he likes. He¨CEven if you gave him a hundred shots of courage, he wouldn¡¯t dare bother your wife.¡± The status of being the great Zachary York¡¯s wife alone was enough to frighten people. Who would dare to covet her? Mr. Lowe chimed in, ¡°That¡¯s right. Our Shawn already has someone he likes. He wouldn¡¯t¨CMr. York, I hope you don¡¯t mind me asking¡­ Who might your wife be?¡± The fact that Zachary was already married was only privy to a particr circle of upper¨Css society and the employees of York Corporation. However, the identity of his wife was unknown to those in this circle. Mr. Lowe at first felt that his son did not have the courage to bother Zachary¡¯s wife, but thinking about it from another angle and considering that they did not even know who she was while factoring in that the person Shawn liked was Serenity, Mr. Lowe suddenly had a very bad feeling. Mrs. Lowe¡¯s train of thought then caught up. She was stunned and her face was filled with shock and disbelief. Could Serenity¡­ be Zachary¡¯s wife? How was that possible? Zachary was already nning to pick a special day toe clean to Serenity about his identity, so keeping it hidden from the Lowe couple no longer mattered to him. He said pointedly, ¡°Mrs. Lowe is very familiar with my wife, Serenity.¡± It really was Serenity! Mrs. Lowe paled dramatically.Owned by N?velDrama.Org. On the other hand, realization dawned on Mr. Lowe. No wonder York Corporation suddenly halted all¨Ccooperation with Lowe Enterprise when things had been just fine and even started stealing their business, resulting in Lowe Enterprise¡¯s rivals taking advantage of this opportunity to make their move on Lowe Enterprise. So it was all because Shawn liked Serenity, while Serenity was Zachary¡¯s wife. His wife who had triggered much gossip was actually the orphaned Serenity who only had her sister to rely on and had no notable family background to speak of! At this moment, Mrs. Lowe was incredibly d that she had only said it to frighten her son into not going to look for Serenity and had not actually tried to use her status and influence to force Serenity and her sister to leave Wiltspoon. Or else, the consequences would have been unimaginable! She was also grateful to her niece for telling her about it, resulting in her ruthlessly stopping her son from constantly going to Serenity¡¯s bookshop to bother her. Otherwise, her son¡¯s future would have been destroyed by Zachary! Now that Zachary had told them the reason, they would naturally supervise their son well and definitely would not let him bother Serenity. Chapter 786 Chapter 786 Chapter 786 ¡°Mr. York, Shawn hasn¡¯t gone to look for Serenity in a long time.¡± Mrs. Lowe added, ¡°I didn¡¯t know Serenity was your wife, but I know Serenity has been married for quite a few months, and yet Shawn persisted in bothering her. I knew this wasn¡¯t right, which was why I forcibly stopped him from going to Serenity¡¯s bookshop and calling her.¡± Zachary said sharply, ¡°Just earlier, your son used a new phone number to call my Seren again. I know he and Seren have known each other for more than a decade and met her before I did, but Seren has chosen me. She is my wife. I will not allow anyone to touch my woman. ¡°Seren has also harshly rejected him and told him that she does not see him as a man. Seren has always treated him like a little brother, but Shawn Lowe continues to find ways and means to bother her. I very much trust Seren, but I cannot tolerate his pestering of Seren.¡± Mr. Lowe hurriedly promised, ¡°Mr. York, don¡¯t worry. When we get back, I¡¯ll definitely discipline Shawn strictly. I promise I won¡¯t let Shawn continue bothering your wife. ¡°Mr. York, Shawn probably doesn¡¯t know that Serenity is your wife. If he knew, even if he had the heart of a lion, he wouldn¡¯t dare bother Serenity.¡± Zachary said coldly, ¡°Seren and I have been married for three months. Even though we¡¯ve been keeping it a secret, Seren did not hide it from Ms. Sox. Shawn too found out long ago that Seren had already married someone. He did not confess his feelings to Seren before that but instead did so after, which means he has ¡°You don¡¯t mean to say that if Seren wasn¡¯t my wife, Shawn can continue bothering her, sticking his nose into her marriage, and ruining it, do you?¡± ¡°Shawn is indeed in the wrong here. It¡¯s my fault for not educating my son properly. I¡¯m really sorry about this, Mr. York,¡± said Mr. Lowe. Zachary said mildly, ¡°This is the reason I asked you to meet me tonight. It¡¯s fine as long as you understand now.¡± ¡°I do! I understand now.¡± The Lowe couple stood up and took their leave. They could not wait to get back home immediately, get their hands on that rascal, and give him a thorough scolding. Just as Zachary said, did it mean that their son could continue pestering Serenity if she was not Zachary¡¯s wife? Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. That would be morally wrong. The young master of their family was still young and only twenty¨Ctwo years old. His future was promising and it was not like he would not be able to find a wife, so why did he insist on clinging to a married woman? After the Lowes left, Zachary immediately went home. After getting home and seeing Serenity in a deep sleep, he rxed. He took off his jacket andy down beside her, looking at her as hey on his side with one hand on her waist. He could not resist dropping a kiss on her lips as he watched her soundly sleeping face. ¡°Serenity, in this life, you can only be my, Zachary York¡¯s wife. No one can take you away from me!¡± Zachary stepped into thend of dreams with his beloved wife in his arms and a satisfied heart. Adversely, the Lowe couple went home to their family vi with fury in their hearts. The moment Mrs. Lowe stepped off the car, she called for the bodyguards who she had hired to keep an eye on Shawn Lowe. ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you guys that Shawn isn¡¯t allowed to call Serenity? How did he get a new phone number to contact her with?!¡± The bodyguards looked at each other. They did not even know that he had changed his number. The bodyguard who Shawn Lowe had managed to bribe paled. Luckily, he stood in the back with his head lowered and was not seen by Mr. and Mrs. Lowe. He did his best to calm himself down and not panic. As long as Shawn Lowe did not sell him out, he would be fine. Mr. Lowe was not in the mood to interrogate the bodyguards. He went upstairs. directly. Arriving in front of his son¡¯s room, he ferociously kicked at the door and yelled, ¡± Shawn Lowe, open up!¡± Mrs. Lowe was worried her husband would use physical force and had to stop interrogating the bodyguards. She hurried up the stairs. Shawn Lowe did not open the door. He was drunk¨Cvery drunk¨Cand was currently sleeping like a log. Hepletely could not hear the sound of his father yelling and kicking at the door. He did not want to wake up either, because in his dreams, he could approach Serenity without restraint. Chapter 787 Chapter 787 Chapter 787 ¡°Darling, let¡¯s talk about this tomorrow. It¡¯s already veryte and if we make too big of a fuss, we might wake our daughter up.¡± Mrs. Lowe advised her husband and stopped him from kicking at the door again. ¡°Shawn¡¯s in a bad mood so he might have had something to drink in his room. If he gets really drunk, he won¡¯t be able to hear any banging on the door.¡± As ofte, Shawn had been getting drunk in his room often. He had a minibar in his room and had moved all his father¡¯s treasured fine wines into his room. It was precisely this constant drowning of his sorrows in alcohol, which led to his having no mood to work during the day that resulted in all the mistakes in his work recently. Mr. Lowe was livid but could not do anything about it and was persuaded to return to their bedroom by his wife. Upon entering their room, Mrs. Lowe asked her husband, ¡°Darling, about Mr. York telling us that Serenity is his wife¡­ Do we have to help him keep it a secret? It doesn¡¯t look like he¡¯s gonepletely public about his rtionship with Serenity.¡°. Her niece was Serenity¡¯s best friend and even she did not know Zachary¡¯s true identity. Mr. Lowe sat down on the sofa in the room, and said after a moment of silence, ¡°Mr. York already said he and Serenity got married in secret. Since he hasn¡¯t gone entirely public about it and even if we know about it now, let¡¯s not mention it to others, lest he makes things difficult for us again. ¡°I knew there was no way York Corporation would just halt all cooperation with us out of the blue like that. Us being able to work together with them was the result of my long, hard work. And even after establishing the cooperation, I was very careful. I was so scared our products wouldn¡¯t be up to par, I didn¡¯t dare make a single mistake. ¡°Even with the chance to meet Mr. York at gatherings once in a while, I wouldn¡¯t deliberately seek to tter and ingratiate myself with him, but I didn¡¯t dare offend him either. Although he¡¯s naturally cold and aloof, he¡¯s a reasonable man. He wouldn¡¯t make things difficult for us just because. ¡°Now I know Shawn was the problem. He must have fallen for Serenity long ago, right? He didn¡¯t confess to Serenity before she had her shotgun marriage, but confessed to her after that and kept clinging to her. What was the use in that?¡± Mrs. Lowe sighed heavily. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. ¡°That¡¯s right. What¡¯s the use? I didn¡¯t approve of him and Serenity being a couple anyway. Serenity and Jasmine have a very good rtionship and I watched her grow up. I don¡¯t hate her, but being a niece is different from being a daughter¨Cinw. ¡°The choice of daughter¨Cinw I have in mind is a youngdy of an illustrious family. Other than looking good, Serenity doesn¡¯t have any particr outstanding traits at the moment. Although she¡¯s fairly good at making some money, she¡¯s not in Shawn¡¯s league. We the Lowes are a wealthy family, so naturally, our daughter¨Cinw muste from a family of equal standing. ¡°Only by marrying a youngdy of a rich family will it be of any help to Shawn. Serenity can¡¯t help him in any way. Even if we were willing to nurture Serenity into making a deep impression on the industry, she¡¯ll be only but a daughter¨Cinw. Who can guarantee that if she gets together with Shawn now, she¡¯ll spend the rest of her life with him? What if we end up nurturing an ungrateful beast? ¡°No matter how I tried to advise him, he wouldn¡¯t listen. Serenity is probably his first love. It¡¯s always hard to forget the first love.¡± Mr. Lowe said, ¡°No matter what Serenity thinks, we can¡¯t let Shawn go on like this. We must make him leave Wiltspoon and stay far away from Serenity. He¡¯ll be able to get over it eventually. ¡°Otherwise, if this goes on, sooner orter, something big is going to blow up. Mr. York is not a good¨C tempered person. He hasn¡¯t dealt us a mortal blow right now probably because of Serenity. Serenity has a good rtionship with Jasmine and you normally treat her like a niece, so he¡¯s probably scared that if hepletely destroys Lowe Enterprise and Serenity finds out the truth, she¡¯ll me him. ¡°But if Shawn continues to stay the same by bothering Serenity from time to time, and Mr. York finds out, he won¡¯t show us any more mercy.¡± ¡°Where should we send Shawn?¡± Mrs. Lowe asked him. She was internally thanking God she had always treated Serenity well. No matter what you did, you must leave a way out for yourself. Chapter 788 Chapter 788 Chapter 788 ¡°After New Year¡¯s, we¡¯ll send him to work in our Havenmill branch for a few years to gain some experience. Once he¡¯spletely gotten over Serenity and matured, we¡¯ll transfer him back here and train him for another two years. If he¡¯s up to the task, I¡¯ll let him take over Lowe Enterprise. ¡°If he can¡¯t get over it and is unable to rise to take the helm, we can only change the sessor then for the future of the Lowe family.¡± Mr. Lowe very much hoped his son could be the sessor to Lowe Enterprise, but that came with the precondition that his son was up to the task. If his son viewed love as more important than his future, he could only pick a sessor anew from amongst his numerous nieces and nephews. Mrs. Lowe¡¯s expression flickered, and she pursed her lips. She said, ¡°We¡¯ll send him off on the fourth of January. Also, we¡¯ll cut off all his allowance. He¡¯s started working. He can spend as much money as he earns, lest he gets toofortable. ¡°We¡¯ll only tell him about Serenity being Zachary¡¯s wife on the third of January. Then, he¡¯ll finally give up and go to Havenmill.¡± Mr. Lowe thought his wife¡¯s n was feasible and said in agreement, ¡°We¡¯ll let him start from the bottom ranks of the Havenmill branch. I¡¯ll get the managing director of the branch to watch over him closely, so nothing happens to him, but I won¡¯t let him get toofortable either. I¡¯ll freeze all his credit cards too. Once he gets to Havenmill, he can arrange a new bank card connected to his wages.¡± For the sake of making Shawn give up on his love for Serenity and molding him into a sessor who could take on the heavy burden that was Lowe Enterprise, the husband and wife steeled their hearts. Shawn did not know that his parents had decided to send him thousands of miles away to Havenmill, and neither did Serenity. For thetter half of the night, she slept very soundly. It felt as if there was a hot water bottle beside her and it was incredibly warm. She slept remarkably well as she hugged the hot water bottle. Maybe because in her dreams, she was eating good food, so she would asionally smack her lips. The next day, when she woke up and saw Zachary lying beside her, she propped her head up on one hand and looked at Zachary¡¯s sleeping face. However, what she recalled was the good food in her dreams. She dreamt someone had invited her out for a meal and the table was full of assorted delicacies. She ate to her heart¡¯s content and her mouth was all oily. In the end, there were two big chicken thighs left that she simply could not stomach and wanted to pack up to bring home to Zachary for him to eat. Yet, no matter what she did, she could not grab ahold of those two chicken thighs- that went on and on until she woke up. Reaching out to touch Zachary¡¯s face, Serenity said to herself, ¡°You¡¯re an unlucky one. I wanted to pack two big chicken thighs and bring them home for you to eat, but I just couldn¡¯t grab them.¡± Leaning down to give a peck on his handsome face, she then got up to prepare breakfast. Today, they were going to Whitmore Mansion. Recalling her dream in which she could not manage to pack up the chicken thighs for Zachary, Serenity immediately went out to buy chicken thighs and reward Zachary for breakfast. It was raining outside and the wind was blowing, which made it especially chilly. Carrying an umbre, Serenity ran to her car and hurriedly got into it after unlocking it. After she started the car, she turned on the heater and slowly warmed up., Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Luckily, the supermarket would only close its doors in the afternoon of Christmas Eve. Serenity went to the supermarket and bought two big chicken thighs. She liked to eat chicken wings, so she bought two pieces for herself and some other things before returning home. Zachary was still asleep even after she reached home. As Serenity prepared breakfast in the kitchen, she muttered, ¡°Last night, he went to God¨Cknows¨Cwhere to do God¨Cknows¨Cwhat, and now still hasn¡¯t woken up.¡± Chapter 789 Chapter 789 Chapter 789 Zachary still had note out when Serenity finished preparing breakfast. She entered the room and looked at the man lying on the bed for a long moment before reaching out to put her hand under his nostrils to check if he was breathing. She then felt his forehead. He was still alive and didn¡¯t have a fever either. ¡°He didn¡¯t juste back this morning, did he? Why is he sleeping so much?¡± Serenity mumbled but did not shake Zachary awake. Instead, she began to pack their clothes. Once he woke up and had breakfast, they could leave. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Liberty was calling. ¡°Hey, Liberty.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°Have you and Zachary left yet?¡± ¡°Not yet. He¡¯s still sleeping. We¡¯ll leave once he wakes up and has his breakfast. What¡¯s up?¡± Liberty said, ¡°Then wait for me at home. I¡¯ll go over there right now. I prepared some gifts for you two but I forgot to pass them to you.¡± ¡°Liberty, there¡¯s no need. It¡¯s raining outside and the wind is blowing hard. It¡¯s freezing out there and you don¡¯t have a car! Mrs. Lane¡¯s not around either. If you bring Sonny out with you, Sonny will get frostbite. If you really want to give us something, when Zachary and I call you on New Year¡¯s Day, you can just send us some Apple cash. It¡¯s the thought that counts.¡± Wiltspoon¡¯s tradition of gift¨Cgiving was all about well¨Cintentions; how much the gift cost did not matter. Normally, gifts would cost about ten to twenty dors. Even the closest rtive gave gifts in the range of two hundred dors. This was not exclusive to Wiltspoon and applied to just about the whole province. The area was famous in the country for giving the cheapest gifts. Liberty thought about it for a moment before saying, ¡°That¡¯s fine by me too.¡± ¡°Liberty, are you really noting with us?¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s enough for me to spend the holidays with just Sonny. Now that I don¡¯t have to cook for the whole family and serve them constantly, I¡¯ll take advantage of this time when my breakfast cafe hasn¡¯t opened yet to bring Sonny for proper sightseeing out and about Wiltspoon.¡± All the while she was married to Hank, she had not been out to sightsee. Every day, her life revolved around her husband and son. Every holiday she would follow her husband back to his old family home and even have to take care of their whole family¡¯s three meals a day. Especially in the past few winter holidays, when they spent it at Hank¡¯s old family home and his rtives and friends came to visit, the house would be filled with people but she alone would be bustling in the kitchen. Sometimes, when Sonny cried and had a tantrum, she even had to cook for everyone while carrying Sonny on her back. Moreover, after she was done busying about the kitchen, the others would not wait for her to join them before digging in because she still had to feed Sonny first after finishing up in the kitchen. Once she was done doing that, there would only be a little bit of food left for her on the table. Thinking back on the slightly more than three years of married life, even Liberty herself did not know how she had managed to endure it. After getting divorced, Liberty felt that her past self was incredibly foolish. She gave her all because she loved Hank, but all her efforts were wasted. ¡°That¡¯s fine by me too, but it has been rainingtely. The temperature keeps dropping, so when you take Sonny out, make sure to bundle up a little more. I¡¯ll leave the car for you to use. When we departter, I¡¯ll send the car keys over to you.¡± Liberty did not reject her sister. She continued to advise Serenity on a few more things before hanging up. ¡°Seren, who were you talking to?¡± Zachary woke up slowly, happened to see Serenity shove her phone into the pocket of her jacket, and asked. Serenity turned her head to nce at him. ¡°You¡¯re awake. Where did you sneak offst night? You probably only came back when the sun rose, didn¡¯t you? You slept so soundly. Usually, you would have long gone to work at this hour. Anyway, my sister called just now. She said she¡¯d prepared some gifts, forgot to pass them to us, and wanted to send them over. ¡°It¡¯s raining and it¡¯s cold outside, so I asked her not toe over.¡± The husband and wife did notck money, but they simply had some habits that remained. The husband and wife were notcking money but simply honoring the customary seasonal gifting. ¡°I didn¡¯t go anywherest night. I met Morpheus with you. Maybe it¡¯s because the weather is cold and it¡¯s so warm under the covers. Plus, it¡¯s the holidays. My whole being is so rxed I couldn¡¯t resist sleeping in.¡± Zachary got off the bed and walked to Serenity, hugging her from behind. ¡°Are the things all packed? I don¡¯t need to bring any clothes with me. It is my home, after all- there are clothes there I can change into. You should bring a few more sets yourself.¡± ¡°Oh, that¡¯s true. I even helped you pack quite a few sets of clothes. It took up too much space.¡± Serenity immediately removed his clothes from the suitcase. Chapter 790 Chapter 790 Chapter 790 ¡°Go and freshen up. Breakfast is ready. Once you¡¯re done washing up and we¡¯ve had breakfast, we can depart. You said it¡¯s quite far, so we should leave a little earlier.¡± ¡°Give me a kiss.¡± ¡°Why should I give you a kiss? Can¡¯t you give me a kiss?¡± Zacharyughed and turned her around, leaning down to kiss her red lips. Her pale hand, however, covered his lips. ¡°Kiss me only after you¡¯ve brushed your teeth,¡± Serenity said as she pushed him away, turning to zip up the luggage. Zachary was speechless. He had just been repelled by his wife. ¡°While you¡¯re at it, remember to shave your scruff off so you don¡¯t poke people with it.¡± Serenity pulled the luggage with her as she left the room. Then, she watered the flowers and fed her three pets. The three pets would also have to be sent over to her sister¡¯s to be taken care of for a while. ¡°I¡¯ming, Honey.¡± After Zachary had brushed his teeth, shaved his face clean, and came out from the room, he called for his beloved wife, ¡°Hurry and let me kiss you.¡± Serenity came out of the kitchen while carrying the breakfast she had already finished preparing. Zachary approached her and she passed the te with the two big chicken thighs on it to him. He epted it and pecked her quickly before following her to the table, satisfied. ¡°Why are there two chicken thighs today?¡± Serenity smiled as she sat down. ¡°Last night, I dreamt someone treated me to a meal and the food was super delicious. I ate for a whole night until there were two big chicken thighs left, which I hadn¡¯t eaten. I wanted to pack them up to bring home for you, but no matter what i did, I couldn¡¯t grab ahold of them. ¡°I only realized it was a dream once I woke up, but I still wanted to give you two chicken thighs to eat.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. She was a glutton through and through. Even in her dreams, she was eating. ¡°I like chicken wings so I got myself two of them. Babe, can you help me get a disposable glove? I won¡¯t get my hands if I eat with the gloves on.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°I, your husband, am most delighted to serve you.¡± He went and got her a disposable glove. ¡°What on earth were you up tost night? ¡°I had a dream for the first time¨Ca nightmare. When I woke up from the nightmare and didn¡¯t see you, I knew you¡¯d gone out.¡± Zachary said, ¡°What happened in your nightmare? I didn¡¯t do much. Mr. Bucham invited me out to have a drink. I was afraid you would nag me about always drinking, so I didn¡¯t dare tell you about it.¡± ¡°Did you drink alcohol? I don¡¯t smell any. I dreamt we were having our wedding but suddenly Elisa appeared to tell me you¡¯re a big fat liar, not to get married to you, and to leave you. She said you¡¯ve never been true to me and been lying to me this whole time. That shocked me awake.¡± Zachary nearly dropped the chicken thigh in his hand. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Luckily, he was able to hold steady and held onto it. ¡°I thought I must have had a nightmare like that because you lied to mest night.¡± ¡°You know what they say¨Cyour dreams reflect your thoughts.¡± Chapter 791 Chapter 791 Chapter 791 Munching on a piece of chicken, Serenity said, ¡°You threw a big tantrum and a fuss, saying that I didn¡¯t see you as a family before I could tell you. Take a look in the mirror. You didn¡¯t tell me that Mr. Bucham asked you out for drinks. It gave me nightmares.¡± Zachary fell silent before uttering, ¡°It¡¯s my fault. I¡¯ll bring you along when Mr. Bucham asks me out next time. You can stop me from drinking, and they can¡¯t make me drink then.¡± ¡°They would think you¡¯re a hen¨Cpecked husband.¡± ¡°Then so be it. They¡¯re single, so they can¡¯t be hen¨Cpecked husbands even if they want to.¡± Amused, Serenityughed. She stayed out of his business for the most part so long as Zachary did not do anything that could jeopardize his health. After filling her belly, Serenity did onest check on the things they were taking with them. The couple made sure nothing was left behind before heading out. First, they had to drop the three pets and the car keys at Liberty¡¯s. Liberty took the opportunity to give them Christmas presents when the couple arrived. With Zachary behind the wheel, he drove his wife to the Yorks¡® old residence for the festive holidays. Although Serenity long knew that Whitmore Mansion was passed down through generations and steeped in history, she was stunned when she feasted her eyes on the old residence. The family was livingrge back in the day. There were no skyscrapers, only quaint buildings. The fence around the residence was tall with security cameras installed everywhere. The security system was top- N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. notch. The manor was decked out with pavilions, winding corridors, an artificial hill, and a pond. Walking into the estate was like traveling through time. ¡°Zachary, you¡¯d be a rich heir if you were born in that era.¡± Zachary took Serenity for a stroll to show her around the residence. He answered with a smile, ¡°I don¡¯t have to be born in that era. I won¡¯t be able to meet you.¡± Technically, he was a rich heir now. To y along with Zachary, the Yorks moved back into the old residence. The maids were either given the day off or on duty at Wildridge Manor. There was no help at Whitmore Mansion. Zachary, his cousins, and his brothers had to do everything themselves. Serenity smiled. ¡°It¡¯s a good thing you¡¯re dependable to make money and run annual maintenance to the ce. Otherwise, the ancient structure would have copsed. It¡¯d be a shame to lose a part of history.¡± ¡°Do you like it here?¡± ¡°Of course.¡± With the couple interlocking their fingers, they strolled along the corridor. ¡°We can retire here when we grow old.¡± Wildridge Manor was beautiful, but the heritage was not as rich as the old residence. As Serenity mentioned, the ce had them time¨Ctraveling back in history. The breathtaking view and quiet environment made it the perfect ce for retirement. Serenity smiled. ¡°Sure.¡± Cocking his head, Zachary lowered his chin and gave her a kiss. He enjoyed the peaceful moment. During the holidays, the couple roamed every corner of Whitmore Mansion and made sweet memories together. Zachary¡¯s brothers and cousins got the chills from the couple¡¯s lovey¨Cdovey disy. Once vacation time was over, they rushed back to the city before they were forced to watch more of the couple¡¯s affection for each other. Grandma May thought the young couple¡¯s sweet rtionship would make her grandsons consider marriage. It never crossed her mind that they would run away instead. Grandma May sighed and said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, you¡¯re the oldest sister¨Cin-w to Callum and the rest. Please set your brothers¨Cin¨C law up for dates if you know any nice girls out there.¡± Serenity answered with a grin, ¡°Nana, they have their parents. They don¡¯t need me to set them up. Besides, they have you too. Don¡¯t rush the boys, Nana. It¡¯s not time for Callum and the others yet. They¡¯ll reach that milestone when they meet the right girl, so there¡¯s no point drilling marriage into them.¡± Chapter 792 Chapter 792 Chapter 792 ¡°I¡¯m not getting any younger. I¡¯m living on borrowed time. I hope they¡¯ll have their own family before I kick the bucket.¡± Grandma May decided to go around Wiltspoon to find potential wives for her remaining grandsons. She would assign the boys to go after the girls she picked out for them. Anyone who was unable toplete the task could forget about attending her birthday celebration at the end of August. ¡°Nana, you¡¯ll live long.¡± ¡°I hope to live long too, even better if I¡¯m alive to see the birth of my great- granddaughter.¡± Following the mention of a great¨Cgranddaughter, Grandma May¡¯s eyes were glued to Serenity¡¯s belly. Serenity embarrassedly uttered, ¡°Stop looking at my belly, Nana. Aunt Flo just came for a visit today.¡± Grandma May was speechless. Zachary had been working on it, but there were still no signs of her great- granddaughter. After Callum and the lot slipped back into the city, Zachary and Serenity did not stay long at the old residence. They soon returned to Wiltspoon and used thest few days of vacation to drive around the city. Zachary was no longer afraid of running into people. Hence, many saw Mr. York at different scenic locations.Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. They even caught a glimpse of Mr. York¡¯s mysterious wife. She was a beauty. People thought she looked rather familiar, but they could not put a name to her face. These people dared not invade the couple¡¯s space and say hello. Instead, they sneaked a few pictures of them. Zachary was affectionate, sweet, and loving toward Serenity. The pictures of them together built a nice photo album in these strangers¡® phones. Without Zachary putting out the word, buzz was brewing among the public. Word got out that Mr. York spoiled his wife silly. Once the delightful holidays were over, it was time to get back to work and school. Before the people could get out of the funk of post¨Choliday blues, Valentine¡¯s Day came around the corner. Serenity had no concept of the special holidays. All she could think about was that the school term was starting. She and Jasmine went to the shop bright early in the morning to clean the ce and restock products. They were hard at work. They had no idea that Zachary was in the presidential suite on the top floor of Wiltspoon Hotel, being interviewed by a bunch of Wiltspoon¡¯s renowned entertainment media about his love for his wife. Zachary and Serenity married at first sight without knowing much about each other and kept the marriage a secret. Since Zachary was the heir of the York family, the paparazzi are dying to find out about his love story. Zachary had been seen around the city, unting his rtionship with his wife lately, and the paparazzi snapped a lot of their lovely moments together. The press wanted to interview him, mainly to dig out the couple¡¯s romantic history. Zachary had epted a few interviews since managing York Corporation. However, the interviews were only business¨Crted. This was the first time he would be asked about his personal life. ¡°Mr. York, what is your wife¡¯s name? We still haven¡¯t figured out who the luckydy of the house is. We do find her face familiar.¡± Last year, the Hunts uploaded a decade¨Cold picture of Serenity and her sister on Twitter afterbeling them as ungrateful granddaughters. Serenity was a child back then and her facial features had since developed. That was why people thought she looked familiar but could not put their finger on it. Those who knew Serenity personally kept mum because Zachary had not gone public with his rtionship. They did not dare put Serenity¡¯s name out there. Hence why the paparazzi could get nothing on Serenity. Of course, the head of the Bucham family had something to do with it too. He had the power to stop any information from getting out. Only God knew everybody had been having a hard time keeping the secret for Zachary. Mrs. Sox could not bring herself to meet her niece in case she might blurt out that Serenity turned out to be Mrs. York. Chapter 793 Chapter 793 Chapter 793 Zachary wore a tender expression. The press was stunned. Mr. York must love his wife very much. The mention of his wife¡¯s name softened, his R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only facial muscles. The media captured Mr. York¡¯s gentle side when he was out and about with his wife. In the past, Mr. York would usually be seen with a sour face, giving off the vibe for people to stay away. The power of love could turn an aloof man affectionate. ¡°My wife isn¡¯t some heiress, but she¡¯s the missus of the York family and that makes her royalty. She¡¯s Serenity Hunt and will be twenty¨Csix this year. She hasn¡¯t had her birthday yet. She thinks she¡¯s old when she hits twenty¨Csix.¡± The reporters wanted to scream. Mr. York turned into a chatterbox when talking about his wife. Hang on. Serenity Hunt? ¡°Mr. York, your wife¡¯s Serenity Hunt?¡± Shell¨Cshocked, a female reporter sought Zachary for confirmation. Zachary turned to her with chilling eyes. Pulling his usual straight face, he fiercely refuted, ¡°Do you have a problem with that?¡± A simple question from Zachary¡¯s mouth came out rather harshly. The female reporter who posed the question somehow cowered in fear. Nevertheless, people in their line of work had met all walks of life. Although Zachary was an indifferent man, he was a man of culture and would notsh out or kick off unreasonably. The female reporter shook away her fears and carried on the questioning. ¡°I don¡¯t have a problem with that. I just thought the name sounded familiar. ¡°Ah, I got it. Is she the girl who went viral on Twitter for being an ungrateful granddaughterst October?¡± Having recalled who Serenity was, the female reporter had a twinkle in her eyes. It appeared Serenity was newsworthy, and the reporter could dig up more about her. ¡°My wife isn¡¯t an ungrateful granddaughter. Her rtives kicked my wife and her Chapter sister out of the house. That family took things too far. My wife was only ten years old then, and her sister was fifteen. They were only children. ¡°Not only did the family take most of the life insurance payout from my wife¡¯s parents, but the Hunts also kicked the sisters out of the house and hogged their parents¡® family home. It was a cold¨Cblooded move. Could you have forgiven the family if this happened to you?¡± The female reporter replied, ¡°Mr. York, I don¡¯t mean any harm. Truth be told, I¡¯m on your wife¡¯s side. Don¡¯t mind thements online. They don¡¯t understand the pain. your wife has gone through. The despair and anger were not something they had experienced. That was why the trolls believed they took the higher moral grounds.¡± It never urred to the press that Zachary¡¯s wife was an orphan. ¡°Mr. York.¡± A male reporter asked, ¡°It¡¯s determined that your wife is the niece of Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Stone hosted a high¨Cprofile event to invite Wiltspoon¡¯s finest to introduce her nieces to everyone. ¡°I recall that your wife did not attend that night. You weren¡¯t there as well. Was it because you¡¯re on bad terms with Mr. Stone?¡± Mrs. Stone did not oppose the presence of the media at the event the other night. That was why the media had firsthand knowledge of the grand event. ¡°Mrs. Stone is the aunt of my wife, which means she¡¯s also my aunt. I have nothing but respect for Mrs. Stone. I didn¡¯t attend the event not because I had bad blood with Mr. Stone. I was already away on business before Mrs. Stone reunited with my wife as family. I also fell sick during the business trip. My wife was worried and flew over to take care of me when she found out. This was the reason my wife and I couldn¡¯t be there.¡± Everybody could imagine Serenity taking an overnight flight and rushing to look after Zachary. ¡°You¡¯re a lucky man, Mr. York,¡± the male reporter expressed. No wonder Mr. York doted on his wife and got famous in Wiltspoon for doing it. If the reporter had a wife who would do anything for him, he would spoil her too. Chapter 794 Chapter 794 Chapter 794 ¡°I think I¡¯m one lucky man too.¡± The harsh lines along Zachary¡¯s face softened, reced with a tender look. His lips curled into a happy smile. Serenity took the night flight to get to Zachary when he had the nasty flu. Although she made him take a daily shot, there was no question he could feel Serenity¡¯s love for him. It was a sweet taste of happiness. ¡°Mr. York, is it true that you married your wife at first sight?¡± Zachary openly admitted to it. ¡°Yes. I¡¯ve never met her before signing the marriage papers, but I know who she was. She saved my nana¡¯s life.¡± ¡°So Old Mrs. York was the reason you married her?¡± ¡°Yes, that¡¯s right. We were in a rush to get married because of my nana, but I¡¯m grateful to her now. I would¡¯ve missed out on meeting a great woman like Seren if Nana didn¡¯t push me to get married.¡± ¡°Oh, wow, Mr. York.¡± It was hard to believe that a man like Mr. York would rush into marriage. The newfound information took the press by surprise. It was no wonder Mr. York never went public about his marriage even though he had been married for a few months. He also stopped everyone from pestering Serenity. Yet today, he agreed to an interview¡­ Was Mr. York ready to announce that he was taken? The reporters were filled with a sudden rush of excitement. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only It was their honor to write a piece about Mr. York¡¯s marriage announcement. ¡°Has it ever crossed your mind that you¡¯d be an uxorious husband one day when you first got married?¡± Zachary smiled and replied, ¡°No. Who can predict tomorrow? Well, I can¡¯t. Maybe you can. If you can, please let me know if our firstborn will be a son or daughter.¡± The few reporters asked in delight, ¡°Is the missus pregnant?¡± Zachary kept a smile on his face. ¡°Not yet, but hopefully soon. I want a cute daughter.¡± The audience fell out of the premature celebration. They thought the missus was expecting, but it turned out to be untrue. ¡°Today is Valentine¡¯s Day, Mr. York. What have you prepared for your wife?¡± ¡°Nothing much. Just a bouquet of flowers, thirty jewelry sets, a vi, and a new car. I¡¯m going to have dinner with her tonight, but I can¡¯t read women¡¯s minds to know what they want, so I went with whatever the public is doing and swam with the tide.¡± The media was shocked. For the Valentine¡¯s Day gift, Mr. York bought thirty jewelry sets for his wife. Needless to say, a single jewelry set must cost tens of thousands. Mr. York would not settle for anything lower to gift his wife. He was also giving her a house and a car¡­ ¡°Mr. York, this is not swimming with the tide. The public can¡¯t afford that kind of money.¡± The female reporter enviously added, ¡°I have a boyfriend, and I can only expect flowers at best. He¡¯s not as generous as you are, Mr. York. ¡°Your wife is very lucky.¡± Serenity married a stranger at first sight, and her husband turned out to be the heir of the wealthiest York family. Imagine the luck. Serenity was destined for a life of riches. It was hard not to envy her. Chapter 795 Chapter 795 Chapter 795 ¡°Why thirty jewelry sets, Mr. York? Is there a significance to the number?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Not really. I was thinking there are thirty days to a month. With thirty jewelry sets, Seren can wear a different set every day for a month. That¡¯s all.¡± The world of the rich was not something ordinary people could everprehend. They would love to be in Serenity¡¯s shoes; even the male reporters were green with envy. It was a good thing they were not in the same circle as Mr. York. Otherwise, they would y second fiddle to Mr. York and would never be able to find a girlfriend. They would feel under pressure to compete with Mr. York. ¡°Mr. York, your wife is Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece, but you¡¯re at odds with Mr. Stone. Are you open to improving your rtionship with Stone Group for your wife? Also, the heiress of Stone Group had once openly dered her love for you and pursued you. Now that she and your wife are cousins, how are you moving forward from there?¡± Zachary faintly responded, ¡°We¡¯re family, but there¡¯s no giving way in the business world. I¡¯ll do me, and he¡¯ll do him. ¡°I appreciate Ms. Stone¡¯s affection, but I only have eyes for my Seren. She¡¯s the only one for me. We promised each other that we will never separate. We will stick together forever. ¡°I didn¡¯t do anything wrong. Why should I be afraid to face Ms. Stone?¡± The press followed up with more questions. ¡°As far as we know, you have not visited the Stones.¡± ¡°Mrs. Stone took the whole family on vacation and hasn¡¯t returned. Am I supposed to visit an empty home?¡± The reporter was speechless. Although Zachary put it lightly, the press was curious about the Stones¡® reaction when they found out that Zachary was Serenity¡¯s husband. It was said that Ms. Stone was close with Serenity. The pair hit it off and became best friends before realizing they were cousins. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Everybody in the city was aware of Ms. Stone¡¯s feelings for Mr. York. It was doubtful that Ms. Stone had let go of her unrequited love. How would she react when she received news that her cousin was married to the man she loved dearly? The Stones and the Yorks were not on great terms, but undeniably, Elisa was the only woman in the whole of Wiltspoon who was an equal to Zachary, social strata speaking. However, Zachary would rather ditch Elisa, who waspatible with him in every way, and married a nobody and an orphan who lived with her sister. Would Ms. Stone lose it and feel insulted? A defeat was easier if it was to a worthy opponent; such was the nature of people. It would be a hard pill to swallow when the victor was someone lesser as no amount of talking could let anyone get over it. Now the media was aware that Zachary married the girl to thank her for saving his nana¡¯s life. Nevertheless, the couple spent time together and started to develop feelings for each other after the marriage. ¡°Mr. York, how do you get along with your wife?¡± ¡°The same as how other couples get along. There¡¯s nothing peculiar about the way we do things.¡± ¡°Do you and your wife get your groceries from the farmer¡¯s market?¡± ¡°We do. We¡¯re people after all. We need to eat, so of course we get our groceries.¡± The reporters believed they might bump into Mr. York getting groceries if they hung around the farmer¡¯s market. Zachary gave the impression of someone on higher ground. He was the heir of the richest family in the city and the boss of York Corporation. Since his time was money, he probably had no time to prepare his own meals. It never urred to the press that Mr. York would go grocery shopping at the farmer¡¯s market like ordinary people. No. The person who changed Mr. York was Serenity. ¡°Um¡­ Who does the cooking? Is it the missus?¡± ¡°Whoever is free to cook. Seren will tidy up the house if I cook. We do an equal share of the household chores.¡± ¡°You cook too, Mr. York? Chapter 796 Chapter 796 Chapter 796 Zachary replied with a question, ¡°Is it weird? The boys in my family can cook. One of my brothers can cook better than the chef at Wiltspoon Hotel.¡± The female reporters enviouslymented, ¡°Your wife is so lucky.¡± think I¡¯m luckier. My Seren is good to me. She¡¯s a fabulous cook. She always makes my favorite food.¡± Jealousy would kill everybody before they could ask further questions. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. The young couple was not in the same room right now, but the way Mr. York talked and the expression on his face exined how happy he was with his married life. The media wrapped up the interview after asking a few more details about his life. ¡°That reminds me. Don¡¯t go hounding my wife. You cane to me with any questions. I¡¯ll make time to take the interview. My wife prefers to live a quiet and mundane life. The people gave their word, ¡°We won¡¯t intrude on the missus without your permission.¡± The most they would do was snap photos of her in secret. They would not dare to mob Serenity. Zachary summoned his security detail to lead the reporters out. Once the reporters were gone, Zachary gave his best friend a call. Josh took the call and said, ¡°Do you think it¡¯s still the holidays? Get back to work! I can¡¯t believe you have note back to work. Is thepany yours or mine?¡± Josh had not had time to sit down since returning to work. He used to get it easy when Zachary was around in the past, but now, he had to call the shots in Zachary¡¯s absence. It was not a task Josh was going to take lying down. It was the Yorks¡®pany, but Josh was the one working his butt off instead. Since today was Valentine¡¯s Day, Josh wanted to get off work early to buy flowers for Jasmine and ask her out for dinner. He had called the florist to reserve a bouquet. ¡°Josh, I¡¯ve epted the press interview.¡± ¡°What interview?¡± Zachary did not tell Josh. Plus, to get himself a wife, Josh promised Jasmine to be an ordinary citizen and not to use the Buchams¡®work to pry into other people¡¯s personal lives. It never crossed Josh¡¯s mind that he would know nothing about Zachary¡¯s interview. There was nothing on the itinerary Mr. Chaplin prepared for Zachary. Did Zachary take it upon himself to ept the interview? ¡°It¡¯s an interview about my marriage.¡± Dumbstruck, Josh quickly ensued with a smile. ¡°So you¡¯re nning toe clean, are you?¡± ¡°I can only keep secrets for so long. It¡¯s better for it toe from me than from someone else. Seren and I are at a sweet spot in our marriage right now, and today is Valentine¡¯s Day. I thought I should tell her who I am on this special day. She might not be¡­ that angry.¡± It was a suggestion from Ben. There was no telling whether it was a useful suggestion. Well, he could get even with Ben if it did not work. Poor Ben. All he did was suggest an idea. The consequence was supposed to be Zachary¡¯s to bear. Now that everything was out there, Zachary braced himself for the hissy fit his wife was about to throw. Joshmented, ¡°I¡¯m dumping the work on Callum, so I can deliver flowers to Jasmine.¡± It was not something Josh wanted to miss! Chapter 797 Chapter 797 Chapter 797 Zachary was speechless. ¡°I¡¯m looking for encouragement and support here, Josh. I¡¯m worried about what Seren¡¯s going to think.¡± ¡°I support you wholeheartedly and in spirit. No matter what you do, I¡¯ll always support you. Zachary, I¡¯m your No.1 fan! Keep it up, Zachary! Even if your worldes crumbling down, you¡¯re a tall guy. Stand up and hold your world up. It¡¯ll be fine. The worst that can happen is you getting crushed.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. ¡°But your wife might stumble upon the truth if you keep up with the secrets. She¡¯ll be angrier than ever and might dump your sorry ass. Prepare to sign the divorce papers, man. ¡°You should prepare for the storm instead of having the storm sneak up behind you. and take you by surprise. We have each other if your wife is mad at you and gives you a snub. Haha. I don¡¯t have to watch you act lovey-dovey with one another anymore.¡± The men could chase after their wives together. Zachary uttered, ¡°I shouldn¡¯t have called you. You¡¯re gloating. I bet you¡¯re going to have the popcorn ready for sh*t to hit the fan.¡± ¡°You know me best, Zachary!¡± Josh openly admitted to it. That was right. He wanted to be there to witness Zachary¡¯s downfall. ¡°Anyhow, you¡¯ve taken the step, so it¡¯s time to face the music. That reminds me, today is Valentine¡¯s Day. I know you don¡¯t have a romantic bone in you and you don¡¯t celebrate this special day, but I¡¯m being nice to give you some advice-buy your wife a bouquet of flowers. Zachary answered, ¡°I bought nine thousand nine hundred and ny-nine roses for Serenity. She¡¯ll receive the delivery at her shopter. ¡°I even got her thirty jewelry sets, and each of them is a unique design. I have a vi and a car ready for her too. Josh, do you think the gifts are enough? Should I get more? Oh, I should buy her thirty handbags. She can have enough to choose a different one every day for a month. ¡°Oh, I should get her clothes, skincare, and cosmetic products. I wouldn¡¯t know I got her too little if it weren¡¯t for your reminder.¡± Josh remarked, ¡°Get lost, showoff!¡± He then mmed the phone. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. All Josh did was order Jasmine a bouquet of flowers. Zachary beat Josh with all the Valentine¡¯s gifts he had gotten. Josh wanted to criticize Zachary at the thought that Serenity would be receiving nine thousand nine hundred and ny-nine roses, jewelry sets, a vi, a car, handbags, etc. while Jasmine was only getting a bouquet of flowers. It was Valentine¡¯s Day, not a wedding. Why did Zachary have to go all out on the presents? Was Zachary going to do the same when International Women¡¯s Day rolled around? Joshter realized why he was still single while Zachary swiftly became a happily married man. It was because Zachary did things excessively! Although his best friend hung up the phone on him, Zachary was not the least bit furious. He believed he could do better with the gifts. Today was the day he was going to bepletely honest with Serenity after all. He wondered how Seren would react to it. Hence why he needed to stock up on presents; maybe they would make Seren less angry. Zachary prayed for things to go well. Keeping himself busy, Zachary left the hotel and brought his security team to spend some cash. Serenity, who was still in the dark at this point, had finished tidying up the shop. The holidays had been free and easy, but now that work had Serenity tied up, her back was killing her. ¡°We finally got the ce cleaned up. The students will be back in school in a few days. Jasmine, did you manage to ask what study materials we needed to look out for? We should ce an order with the supplier before it¡¯s toote.¡± It was not like the supplier could make an immediate delivery. Chapter 798 Chapter 798 Chapter 798 It would take a couple of days before their order could be processed. Serenity and Jasmine needed to get all the study materials the students needed for the new school term before the school reopened. They should at least know the materials needed in advance so they could ce the order. Putting the mop back into the closet, Jasmine uttered, ¡°I found outst night what we needed and made a list. The list is in my bag. You can check it and phone the supplier to make the delivery in the next few days.¡± Students would purchase the school materials assigned by the teachers or that were rmended in the first few days of school. It would be the busiest time in the shop. Serenity asked her sister and Mrs. Lane to help out at the shop on the first day of school. Liberty had gotten in touch with a contractor to remodel her restaurant. Now that the price had been agreed upon, the remodeling would begin in a few days. The students would be returning before the restaurant¡¯s renovations began, so Liberty coulde over to lend her sister a hand. ¡°Let me check.¡± Taking a seat behind the cash register, Serenity retrieved the list from Jasmine¡¯s bag. Serenity turned on theputer to key the information in an Excel spreadsheet. Jasmine drew close. She pulled a chair over and sat next to Serenity, watching Serenity turn on the Once theputer was up and running, Serenity clicked on Spotify to y a song. It was nice to listen to music while working. She picked the song, ¡°Miss You¡±. ¡°This song again? You like the song, huh?¡± ¡°Yeah. The song was on the radio when I took a ride in Zachary¡¯s car. I thought it was beautiful.¡± ¡°Oh, I¡¯ve been meaning to ask-did Mr. York do anything for today?¡± Jasmine suddenly asked. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Serenity asked in confusion, ¡°Does he need to do something today? Is today a special asion?¡± Jasmine answered with a grin, ¡°You¡¯ll know when you look at the calendar.¡± ¡°February the fourteenth. What¡¯s special about today?¡± Serenity inquired before it hit her. Curling her lips, she answered, ¡°Oh, Valentine¡¯s Day. I don¡¯t have any concept of special asions. Every day is Valentine¡¯s Day to us when we¡¯re in a good ce in our rtionship. Valentine¡¯s Day means nothing if we don¡¯t get along.¡± ¡°I knew you won¡¯t pay any mind to special asions. Your husband must be the same. I don¡¯t see him having anything nned yet.¡± ¡°Did Mr. Bucham do anything for you?¡± Jasmine choked. ¡°No.¡± She then added, ¡°He probably has the same character as Mr. York. They don¡¯t even learn from the rest of the world and send some flowers on Valentine¡¯s Day.¡± Serenity smiled and clicked on a browser. This was her work habit where she would listen to music and open the browser to check for some news. Serenity would get to work after reading thetest news. She had only opened a webpage when a pop-up appeared at the bottom right corner of her screen. Serenity took a quick nce and saw it was a piece of hot gossip. Uninterested, she was about to close the pop-up¡­ ¡°Don¡¯t close it, Seren. Look closer. It¡¯s about the heir of the York family. Come on, click on it. Mr. York hasn¡¯t been in the news for a while now.¡± Although the fun-loving Jasmine believed she would never have the chance to meet Mr. York in person, she was keen on some gossip about the heir. She was dying to find out who his beloved wife was. Chapter 799 Chapter 799 Chapter 799 Jasmine was highly interested in the identity of Mrs. York. She was in awe of Mrs. York¡¯s ability to turn a callous man like Mr. York into an uxorious husband. She had heard a lot about Mr. York adoring his wifetely. Jasmine had asked Josh before to pull some strings and introduce her to Mrs. York. Josh was Mr. York¡¯s most trusted man, so he must be one of the first to know that Mr. York was married. Jasmine bet Josh had met Mrs. York in the flesh. s, Josh turned down her request, saying that he could not reveal who Mrs. York was until Mr. York was ready to make the public announcement himself. It got Jasmine down for days. Josh was trying to win her heart right now, but he could not even make her one wish happen. It showed how protective Mr. York was of his wife. Now that some news was finally out, she had to click on it and see what was going 1. ¡°What¡¯s there to read? It¡¯s only about his marriage.¡± Serenityughed and added, ¡°Why are you people dying to find out who the missus of the York family is? What does her identity have anything to do with us? It¡¯s not like we¡¯d ever meet her.¡± Not to mention, they could not learn her secrets to taming her husband. Since Serenity and Zachary were in a great ce in their marriage right now, Serenity no longer needed to seek help from Mrs. York for her secrets. Zachary spoiled her silly. ¡°Who doesn¡¯t want to know who Mrs. York is? Elisa phoned me to chat the other day. She asked if anyone knew her identity yet.¡± Jasmine and Serenity switched ces. Serenity was not interested, but Jasmine was very much keen. ¡°Elisa doesn¡¯t talk to me about that.¡± Elisa was away traveling for the holidays and was not back yet. Jasmine clicked on the pop-up and said, ¡°Elisa knows you don¡¯t care about that. Why should she bother asking you? I¡¯m the queen of gossip. Plus, I know Josh. Elisa believes I¡¯ll be the first to find out who Mrs. York is.¡± The pop-up gossip was an interview. It was Mr. York¡¯s interview. The two women were dumbfounded the moment they saw the person in the interview. Reacting strongly, Serenity pulled Jasmine away and took the seat in front of theputer. She watched Zachary¡¯s interview with widened eyes. Jasmine leaned against the cash register and propped her head near theputer screen to have a good look at Zachary in the interview. She rubbed her eyes a few times before asking her best friend, ¡°Seren, are my eyes ying tricks on me? Did I see it right? ¡°Look at the caption. Is that the heir of the Yorks? Why is Mr. York your Mr. York?¡± If only Serenity could get inside theputer to confirm whether the heir was Zachary. She stared nkly at Zachary on theputer, rewatching the interview multiple times before she was certain that the interviewed man, who people called the heir of the Yorks, was her man! Zachary was Mr. York. Mr. York was Zachary! Serenity once asked if Zachary was rted to the wealthiest York family, but he said the only thing he shared with the heir was the samest name: She thought it was simply a coincidence. She had talked to Zachary about Mr. York because Jasmine loved to gossip. He acted like nothing ever happened while telling her about himself. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. There were many times she asked him about Mr. York and his wife, and he made up a believable story each time. He had her fooled since the beginning of the marriage! Serenity was suddenly reminded of the dream. In the dream, she was walking down the aisle to Zachary when Elisa jumped out to stop the wedding. Elisa told her that Zachary was a liar who had been deceiving her. Elisa advised Serenity against marrying Zachary. Elisa¡­ Elisa was in love with Mr. York, and Mr. York was Zachary¡­ Chapter 800 Chapter 800 Chapter 800 It exined why Zachary went away on business after Serenity did a DNA test with her aunt. Zachary was trying to get away from meeting Aunt Audrey in case the jig was up and his cover was blown! Serenity¡¯s mind shed back to the moments in their four-month-old marriage as color washed off her face. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Jasmine noticed that Serenity¡¯s hand over the mouse was shaking. ¡°Seren. Seren. Are you okay? Are you alright?¡± Serenity¡¯s reaction gave Jasmine a scare. Jasmine immediately smacked and shook her Like a puppet, Serenity sat still and did not respond no matter how many times Jasmine tried to get her attention or smack her Serenity simply stared at Zachary¡¯s face blown up on theputer screen in a trance It was him. It had to be him! He was her spouse. There was no way she could be wrong about that. They were a couple who shared the most intimate moments together. She was beginning to trust her spouse, but he turned out to be a big liar! He had her fooled from the start! ¡°Don¡¯t scare me, Seren. Say something. I¡¯m scared to see you like this. I-I¡¯m going to give Liberty a call.¡± Unable to snap her best friend out of the trance, Jasmine pulled out her phone to call Liberty for help. Amid the fluster, she could not remember Liberty¡¯s contact number. She had to scroll through her contact list one by one to find Liberty¡¯s number. It took a while before Jasmine found Liberty¡¯s new phone number. She scrolled past the number a few times without realizing it. Serenity was in a horrific state. Her face was pale in color. Liberty was at her restaurant. Having gotten a call from Jasmine, she asked, ¡°What¡¯s up, Jasmine? Let Seren know I won¡¯t be going over for lunch.¡± She thought her sister was calling to have lunch together at the bookshop. ¡°Where are you now, Liberty? Is this a good time? Hurry over. Something¡¯s gotten into Seren.¡± Turning as white as a sheet, Liberty went over to grab her son and rushed out of the restaurant before Jasmine could exin further. Liberty stopped the first car driving by. Duncan hit the brakes. He unlocked the door to get out of the car, but Liberty climbed into the backseat with Sonny. Once in the car, Liberty said, ¡°I need to get to Wiltspoon School, driver. Drive!¡± Duncan turned around and looked at her. ¡°What happened? You¡¯re all over the ce. You did not even close the door of your shop.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis?¡± Surprised, Liberty asked, ¡°Why are you here?¡± Why had she always run into Duncan? Duncan uttered amusedly, ¡°I should be asking you that question. You raced out with. Sonny in your arms and stopped my car without looking at who was behind the wheel. You got into the car without knowing it was me. You could be kidnapped and sold if you stop and get in any car.¡± While talking, he took a good look at Liberty. It appeared Liberty had lost more weight over the holidays. She lost the fat on her cheeks and became more pleasing to the eye. ¡°Are you free now, Mr. Lewis? Can you drive me to Wiltspoon School? If not, I can hail a cab.¡± Liberty did not want to take up Duncan¡¯s time since he was a busy man. Besides, it must be a busy time of the year since it was just after the holidays. She carried her son and was going to get out of the car. ¡°Sit down. I¡¯ll drive you there! Hand me the keys to your shop. I¡¯ll help you lock up.¡± Liberty felt her pocket and said, ¡°The keys¡­ The keys are in the restaurant.¡± Chapter 801 Chapter 801 Chapter 801 Duncan shot Liberty an angry look before getting out of the car. He went into the restaurant and picked up the keys to lock the ce up. Back in the car, Duncan concentrated behind the wheel and asked, ¡°What happened? You¡¯re all over the ce, and you look pale.¡± ¡°Jasmine called me to say something happened to Seren.¡± Color washed off Liberty¡¯splexion further at the mention. Her sister went to the bookshop to tidy up the ce today. What could have happened? Did a bookshelf topple over her sister? There were a lot of books on the shelf. The weight of the bookshelf with the help of gravity falling on a person¡­ Liberty stopped herself from dwelling deeper into that scenario. She was terrified. What if something happened to her sister? What if her sister had an ident? Liberty had lost her parents and only had her sister, growing up. If her sister¡­ Tears streamed down Liberty¡¯s face. Duncan asked with concern, ¡°What happened to your sister?¡± Since Serenity was his best friend¡¯s wife, Duncan was rather worried about the situation. ¡°I don¡¯t know. Jasmine didn¡¯t say. All she told me was that something happened to Seren. She sounded flustered on the phone, so it must be something bad.¡± Duncan said, ¡°Hurry up and give Ms. Sox a call to get to the bottom of the situation. Don¡¯t cry. You¡¯re crying without knowing what the situation is. What if it isn¡¯t what you think it is? That would be a waste of your tears.¡± Liberty choked with sobs. ¡°I can¡¯t help myself¡­ It brought me back to the time I was called out of the ssroom by the teacher and told to go home. Themunity reached out to the school and told me to hurry home. I got home only to find my parents dead¡­ The day of her parents¡¯ death was imprinted in Liberty¡¯s mind for life. She shuddered with fear every time she received a phone call out of the blue. Liberty feared the worst. ¡°Don¡¯t scare yourself. Just check what happened.¡± Duncan was aware that Liberty and Serenity lost their parents eleven years ago. Serenity might not remember much because she was ten years old, but Liberty was a young teen at fifteen. She had just entered high school and could remember the details clearly. Besides, due to their parents¡¯ sudden passing, Liberty had to pick up the pieces as the older sister to sort out the funeral and look after her sister. It would forever be a painful memory for her. ¡°Mr. Lewis, tissue please.¡± Sonny, who was scared of Duncan, asked the man for a tissue. Duncan handed him a tissue. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only After thanking Duncan for the tissue, the little man slipped out of the car seat and stood in front of Liberty to wipe away her tears. His young voice bore hints of Liberty picked her son up and brushed her own tears away. ¡°Sonny.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t cry, Mom.¡± Sonny lifted his little arm to wipe his mother¡¯s tears away. Feeling touched, Liberty gave her son a tight cuddle before giving Jasmine a call. Jasmine epted the call right away. ¡°Jasmine, what happened to Seren? How is she? It wasn¡¯t clear on the phone just now. I¡¯m on the way to the shop, so I¡¯ll be there soon.¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°I lost you before I could say anything more. I kept trying to get your attention, but you didn¡¯t respond. That was why I hung up. Don¡¯t panic, Liberty. It¡¯s not what you think. I-It¡¯s Mr. York.¡± ¡°What happened to Zachary? Was he in an ident?¡± Hearing that it was not something fatal as she had imagined, Liberty was able to calm her nerves. She was about to breathe a sigh of relief when she found out it was about Zachary. Her heart jumped out of her throat. ¡°Liberty, Mr. York is Mr. York.¡± ¡°Zachary is Mr. York? What do you mean Mr. York¡­? Don¡¯t tell me you¡¯re talking about the heir of the wealthiest Yorks. Is it ¡®the¡¯ Mr. York whose wife¡¯s identity everybody has been gossiping about?¡± Chapter 802 Chapter 802 Chapter 802 Jasmine answered, ¡°That¡¯s him! ¡°Mr. York epted a press interview. I watched the interview, and it was about him and Seren. Seren turned white and stunned like a puppet when she saw the video. I pushed, hit, and yelled at her, but she hasn¡¯t shown any reaction. She¡¯s scaring the hell out of me. That¡¯s why I¡¯m calling you for help.¡± Liberty had the shock of her life. Her brother-inw turned out to be the heir of the York family! How could that possibly be? Liberty had met the Yorks. They were no different from ordinary folks. They dressed in clothes withoutbels and drove mid-range priced cars. They did not seem wealthy to Liberty. The only thing that stood out was that the Yorks carried themselves with grace and culture. ¡°I¡¯ll be right there. Pour a ss of water for Seren and tell her to drink it. If that doesn¡¯t help, ssh her with a basin of cold water. That should do the trick.¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°Won¡¯t Seren catch a cold?¡± With her head clearer than before, Liberty uttered, ¡°That¡¯s the only way to snap Seren out of her trance. Otherwise, she¡¯ll sit there nkly. We won¡¯t be able to get any emotions out of her.¡± She understood what her sister was feeling right now. Liberty would rather Serenity cry than her showing no emotions like a puppet. Zachary had been lying to her sister all this while! Jasmine looked at her stupefied best friend and responded, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you to arrive, Liberty.¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯m on my way.¡± ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll try another way to see if I can get ahold of her.¡± Jasmine then disconnected the call. She gave Serenity another nudge. ¡°Seren. Seren. Come back to me. Don¡¯t scare me.¡± Serenity looked like a mannequin. Jasmine pushed her, and Serenity shook along the motion, but the moment Jasmine stopped, Serenity went back to sitting there and staring nkly at Zachary on the computer screen. Jasmine then pinched Serenity¡¯s cheeks and twisted her ear. Nothing worked. ¡°D*mn Zachary! It¡¯s his fault Seren is like this.¡± Jasmine cussed at Zachary and fell into thought before going into the kitchen. She took out some utensils and started banging the spoon on a metal bowl around Serenity. Focus gradually returned to Serenity¡¯s eyes until she was able to pull herself together. ¡°Jasmine?¡± ¡°Thank God you¡¯re back on earth. You scared the hell out of me.¡± Jumping to her feet, Serenity picked up her car keys and walked around the cash. register to dash out. ¡°Where are you going, Seren? Don¡¯t drive. You¡¯re not in a good state to drive right now. Seren!¡± Jasmine was one step behind Serenity. By the time Jasmine got out of the shop, Serenity had gotten into the car and started the engine. The girl was moving fast. Needless to say, Serenity must be heading to York Corporation to grill Zachary. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Jasmine was worried sick. Serenity was not in the right mind to drive, and that would only get her into a car ident. She immediately closed the shop to give Serenity a chase. Jasmine usually took her e-bike to work. The e-bike could not outrun Serenity¡¯s car on the road. Even so, she still had to go after Serenity. Without hesitation, Jasmine jumped on her e-bike and went in pursuit of Serenity. While on the road, she prayed that nothing would happen to Serenity. Chapter 803 Chapter 803 Chapter 803 While Serenity and Jasmine took off from the shop, Liberty got a ride from Duncan and arrived at Wiltspoon School in no time. Since school was still out, it was dead quiet near the school grounds and the shops nearby the entrance were not open for business either. Liberty noticed the door to her sister¡¯s bookshop was shut. ¡°Why is it close?¡± Liberty got out of the room and approached the shop. She pounded on the door, but there was no response whatsoever from inside. Pulling out her phone, Liberty gave her sister a call. Serenity was bent on storming to York Corporation and getting answers from Zachary. Was he really the heir of the wealthiest York family? Too caught up in her clouded thoughts to hear her phone ring, Serenity did not pick up her sister¡¯s call. Liberty had to call Jasmine. Jasmine was in mid-pursuit of Serenity on her e-bike, but her ride was losing speed. Jasmine had charged the battery of her e-bike a few days ago, and the battery was running out! N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. With her phone ringing, Jasmine stopped at the side of the road and took Liberty¡¯s call. ¡°Liberty, Seren¡¯s making her way to York Corporation to look for Mr. York. She¡¯s not in a good ce right now. I¡¯m worried she might get into an ident, but my e-bike can¡¯t keep up with her, and now the battery on my bike is running out.¡± Jasmine regretted riding her e-bike to work. She should have driven her BMW. ¡°I got it. I¡¯ll hurry to York Corporation now.¡± Since her sister was on her way to York Corporation, Liberty turned on her heel and made it back to the car. Seeing that Duncan was on the phone, she waited patiently instead of urging Duncan to drive. Duncan was on the phone with Zachary. He heard Liberty¡¯s conversation with Jasmine and he knew the jig was up for Zachary. Judging by the way Jasmine was describing it, Zachary exposed his own cover. Duncan believed Zachary should havee clean to Serenity about who he was the moment he fell in love with her. Nevertheless, Zachary feared losing Serenity too much to take the plunge. Zachary simply waited for the right time until he and Serenity were solid as a rock before he could be honest without scruples. Judging by Liberty¡¯s reaction, Duncan could guess how Serenity responded to the situation. Duncan was giving his best friend the heads-up. Zachary should be prepared to face Serenity¡¯s wrath. Now that Liberty hopped back into the car, Duncan hung up the call and cocked his head to ask, ¡°What¡¯s the situation now? Where is your sister?¡± ¡°Jasmine said Seren went to York Corporation, but she¡¯s not herself right now. Jasmine¡¯s going after her before Seren gets herself in an ident, but Jasmine took her e-bike. Her battery went t mid- way. Mr. Lewis, can you drive me to York Corporation, please?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Sure. We¡¯ll go right now.¡± He quickly updated his best friend with a text message that Serenity was headed for York Corporation. Zachary was getting Herm¨¨s bags for his beloved wife when he got the friendly alert. from his best friend. Now that it was no longer time for shopping, he led his security team and scrambled back to the office. He found the courage and strength before epting the interview. Zachary thought Serenity would not find out until at least tonight because she was not into gossip. Serenity usually received second-hand gossip from Jasmine. It never urred to him that the news would reach her so soon. Did she see the interview, or did ite from someone else? Riding in the Rolls Royce, Zachary appeared calm on the surface, but his nerves were showing through his clenched fists. Multiple scenarios ran through his head of what the verdict would be. Would she ept the newfound fact after a series of questioning, or would he get the death sentence from her? It crossed his mind to give Nana a call so Nana could help smooth things over. Chapter 804 Chapter 804 Chapter 804 Nevertheless, Zachary changed his mind after whipping his phone out. It was a decision he made. It was the path he chose. No matter what, he had to finish it himself. There was no doubt Serenity would be mad. All Zachary must do was apologize and exin. He was willing to do the grunt work of winning his wife¡¯s heart again because it was his cross to bear. Zachary should not count on Nana¡¯s help all the time Frankly, he was not the only one lying to Serenity His whole family had Serenity fooled.. Nana probably would not be of much help to make the situation better because Seren might also hold a grudge against Nana The first person to lie about who they were was Nana! If Serenity had watched Zachary¡¯s interview, the others must have seen it too The public was mostly unbothered by the interview, jealous of Serenity at best since. she was so blessed to marry Mr. York and receive his love. However, the Hunts and the Browns took the news rather interestingly. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. John came across the interview first. The moment his gaze fell on Zachary¡¯s face, his phone slipped from his hand and dropped to the ground, smashing the mobile. screen to pieces. ¡°Impossible. No way. I can¡¯t believe the b*tch¡¯s luck.¡± John loathed his cousins to the point he could not call Liberty and Serenity by name. He reced their names with vileness. Zachary would most definitely knock John¡¯s teeth out if he heard John call his wife the b-word. The girl was the love of his life. He would give anything to Serenity and would not stand for any insult to his wife. John could die for all Zachary cared! The Hunts must think they had paid enough for their crimes. Zachary nned to help his wife and go to court to repossess his father-inw¡¯s property. The Hunts could forget getting any more out of Serenity! ¡°John, what lucky b*tch are you talking about?¡± With his son shocked and mumbling to himself, Chris asked with concern. Chris drew close and bent over to pick up his son¡¯s phone. Feeling the pinch, he said, ¡°Your phone costs over ten thousand dors. Your screen is broken. Can it be repaired, or do you need to get a new one? A new phone costs money. ¡°You don¡¯t have a job now. Although you have some savings, you can¡¯t burn through them. You have to watch it and be careful with your money. ¡°It¡¯s time to look for a job now that it¡¯s a new year. You can try other cities since you don¡¯t have much luck in Wiltspoon. You don¡¯t have to stay in Wiltspoon, you know.¡± Luck had not been on their family¡¯s side after the falling out with Serenity and Liberty. Their businesses were in the red. Those who were under employment wereid off. Even the elders in the family had it rough. They had no ie without a job. It was still a worrying issue even if they had money stashed away. ¡°Dad, I saw it.¡± ¡°Saw what?¡± ¡°Serenity¡¯s husband. I saw his interview. I finally get why we¡¯ve been having a streak of bad luck. It¡¯s not the Stones. No, the Stones are involved too, but they¡¯re not the first to make our lives a living hell. ¡°It¡¯s Serenity¡¯s husband. That poker-faced man named York. It was him!¡± With the information making Chris more confused than ever, he asked, ¡°Can you be clearer, John? Our misfortune has something to do with Serenity¡¯s husband? Was he the one to put out the order and make our lives miserable? Isn¡¯t he just an ordinary sryman?¡± Sure, the man worked at a majorpany, but he was merely an employee. He did not have the means toe down heavily on the Hunts and ruin them financially. It had been the roughest holiday season for the Hunts. Chapter 805 Chapter 805 Chapter 805 Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt could not give the family a moment of rest too. The old folks expected money from their kin for the holidays since their savings were spent on Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s hospital stay. The seniors did not feelfortable without any money. so they tried to get money from the rest of the family for retirement. John said, ¡°Dad, Serenity¡¯s husband is the York guy. He¡¯s Mr. York, the heir of the York family. I¡¯m talking about the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon. He¡¯s worth billions.¡± Baffled, Chris looked at his son as if he could not believe the wordsing out of his son¡¯s mouth. Was Serenity¡¯s husband the heir of the wealthiest Yorks? A billionaire? That would mean a lot of money. ¡°Is that true, John?¡± ¡°Honest to God. His interview was on TV. We¡¯ve met Zachary. The reporters called him Mr. York. It must be him. It is him.¡± Once Chris got the confirmation he needed, he smacked hisp and said, ¡°I¡¯ll go find. your grandparents now. That¡¯s their retirement fund sorted. Serenity¡¯s husband is wealthy. How much is he worth again? Billions! I get your grandparents to ask her for money. She doesn¡¯t have to give a lot to provide for your grandparents anyway. ¡°Well, I¡¯ll get your grandparents to ask for more since the money will be ours to split once they¡¯re dead.¡± Chris had everything thought out. Why should they be left out when their niece married a billionaire? It slipped Chris¡¯s mind that their rtionship with Serenity and Liberty was beyond repair. With no regard to his son¡¯s thoughts, Chris ditched John and hurried to look for his parents at Serenity¡¯s parents¡¯ home. Serenity had no idea how people, who had met Zachary but did not know who he was, would react to the interview. All she knew was that she needed to see Zachary now. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only She drove too fast and rear-ended a car. It was a good thing the damage was not as bad. The person wanted to call the cops and im the insurance when Serenity got out of the car and assessed the damage. She dug out all the cash in her purse, around several thousand dors, and gave the money to the person. ¡°I can¡¯t stay to sort this out since I have an emergency, mister. This is for the repairs. You can contact me if it isn¡¯t enough.¡± She then gave her number to the person. The person had checked the bump on his car. He did not drive an expensive car, and the damage was only superficial. The repair would cost two thousand dors at most, but Serenity gave him more than enough to cover the cost. With Serenity in a hurry to leave and looking distraught, the man said, ¡°You don¡¯t look too good. Watch out on the road.¡± ¡°Thank you, mister. I¡¯m so sorry about the ident. I got to go. I have an emergency, a really urgent one.¡± ¡°Go on. Be safe.¡± Serenity returned to her car and drove away. Although she was still driving recklessly the rest of the journey, Serenity made it to York Corporation in one piece. She pulled the handbrake and jumped out of the car before racing into the office building. The security guard on duty was going to stop her when he got a good look at who it was. He would not daree in her way. If someone like Serenity who had no interest in the entertainment news had seen. Zachary¡¯s interview, then of course, the employees of York Corporation would have watched it by now. Even though everybody knew Serenity was the CEO¡¯s wife, the CEO had only made it public today. Serenity dashed into the office building. ¡°Ms. Hunt?¡± The two receptionists stopped her. Serenity stopped in her tracks and caught her breath from running too quickly. A receptionist went to pour her a ss of water while the other moved a chair over for her to sit on. The receptionist uttered, ¡°Are you looking for Mr. York, Ms. Hunt? He hasn¡¯te in today. He¡¯s not in the office.¡± This was the truth. Chapter 806 Chapter 806 Chapter 806 ¡°Zachary¡¯s not in the office? He hasn¡¯te in today?¡± Serenity was in disbelief. Where was he if not the office? Did he not have the interview in his office? Serenity recalled the background of his interview was fancy. However, it was not a familiar ce to her. She had never seen that kind of furnishing. She thought that was his office, and she had never stepped into his office before. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Serenity had been to York Corporation multiple times, but Zachary had not brought her to his real office. He lied to her, saying that everybody worked at cubicle desks. If she remembered correctly, Callum¡¯s office had an office door sign that read COO. The whole family was in on it! Serenity scowled at the thought that Zachary had her fooled for a long time. ¡°Ms. Hunt, Mr. York hasn¡¯t been in the office today.¡± The receptionist, who poured Serenity a ss of water, added, ¡°Do you need to speak with Mr. York? Maybe you can call him?¡± Serenity grabbed the ss of water. She came in a rush and raced all the way here. Now that she was seated, the thirst started creeping in. Serenity finished the ss of water before asking, ¡°Is Josh around? I want to see him.¡± Zachary talked about riding on Josh¡¯s coattails to thrive in thepany. That was bullsh*t! It was the other way around! Josh was the CEO¡¯s administrative executive, which meant he was Zachary¡¯s administrative executive. Josh knew Zachary was married all along. The receptionists exchanged looks, getting an idea why Serenity was here. ¡°I¡¯ll ask and check if Mr. Bucham has time right now, Ms. Hunt.¡± One of the receptionists contacted Josh¡¯s secretary on the inte while the other suggested Serenity try Zachary on the phone instead. Serenity was without a word. Her phone had rung throughout her journey here, but she was not in the mood to take any calls. The pher stopped ringing, probably because its battery died. Her phone did not have much battery life left, and she did not have time to plug in the charger. News that Zachary was Mr. York really messed up her head. With rage sweeping over her, Serenity ran out of her shop and put the pedal to the metal, only to be told Zachary was not in the office. Since Zachary was not around, she could get some answers from Josh. ¡°Get Callum to see me if Mr. Bucham isn¡¯t free.¡± Callum was Zachary¡¯s brother, so she could question him all the same. The receptionist on calling duty put down the phone and courteously said to Serenity, ¡°Ms. Hunt, Mr. Bucham will see you upstairs.¡± She then walked around the desk, leading Serenity to the lift. After pressing the button on the lift, the receptionist stayed with Serenity instead of letting her go alone. Once they arrived at the desired floor, the receptionist brought Serenity to Josh¡¯s secretary and personally handed her over to the secretary before turning to leave. ¡°Pleasee with me, Ms. Hunt.¡± Josh¡¯s secretary remained respectful toward Serenity. They approached the administrative executive¡¯s office and knocked on the door. After getting a response from Josh on the other side, the secretary opened the door for Serenity and beckoned her to go inside. ¡°Ms. Hunt.¡± Josh was going to ditch work to deliver flowers to Jasmine at the shop and catch the moment of truth between Zachary and Serenity, but thedy of the hour herself showed up at the office instead. Chapter 807 Chapter 807 Chapter 807 Jasmine had given Josh a call earlier to say that her ride ran out of juice in the Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. middle of the road. She was trying to push her e-bike back but it was too great of a distance and she did not make much progress either. In the end, she sought Josh for help. This was the first time Jasmine asked Josh for help. She called him to pick her up. because she could get a ride and offer sce to her best friend. Otherwise, Jasmine would have called her brother to pick her up instead, and Josh, could kiss the opportunity goodbye. John beckoned Serenity to sit as he paused his ns to pick Jasmine up. ¡°Would you like anything to drink, Ms. Hunt?¡± ¡°No need for that. I want to ask you a few questions. Is Zachary the heir of the wealthiest family in the city? Is he your boss?¡± After much silence, Josh replied with a question, ¡°Have you seen Mr. York gushing all over his wife in the interview?¡± ¡°Gushing all over his wife? More like lying to his wife!¡± Serenity furiously remarked, ¡°I saw the interview. I can¡¯t believe it¡¯s him!¡± Josh carefully examined Serenity¡¯s expression. She was upset and livid. Josh silently prayed for Zachary and wished him the best. It would probably take a while before Zachary could work out the marriage crisis. It served him right! He was the one who pretended to be someone else! Josh suddenly felt relieved that he told Jasmine who he really was. Sure, it added obstacles to getting the girl, but at least Josh did not have to face the disaster Zachary was in. One wrong move and Serenity might just divorce Zachary. Nevertheless, divorce was not an option for Zachary. Josh knew Zachary well. Zachary was an unfeeling man who saw love as nothing but philosophical. For a detached man to develop feelings for a woman, it was all the love he could ever give a person. Apart from Serenity, Zachary could not possibly fall in love with another woman. Serenity was everything to Zachary, and he could not fathom the thought of losing her. That was why he covered up lies with more lies until he finally owned up today. Even so, Zachary did not fess up directly to Serenity. Instead, he decided to go public. Serenity would probably be thest person to know if Jasmine was not so keen on getting gossip about Mr. York. Zachary would go mad if Serenity left him, and York Corporation would suffer along with his madness. It would be catastrophic for everybody. It was not a nightmare Josh wanted to go through. ¡°Ms. Hunt, what you saw is the truth. Zachary is Mr York, the heir of the wealthiest. York family. He¡¯s also the CEO of thepany¡± Josh was honest. There should not be any more lies with Serenity. Despite already knowing the truth, Josh¡¯s confirmation drained the color off Serenity¡¯s face once more. Zachary was Mr. York. The man Elisa had been in love with for years. The man Elisal publicly professed her feelings to and openly pursued. Serenity once helped Elisa to win Zachary¡¯s heart. Serenity could not live down the fact that she told Zachary she gave ideas to Elisa in her pursuit of Mr. York. He never gave her anything to doubt him! That b*stard! It was just like her dream. He had deceived her all this while. He was a big liar! ¡°Ms. Hunt, Zachary has his reasons to keep his identity from you.¡± Josh wanted to watch his best friend crash and burn, but there was a time and ce for such things and now was not. He had to stand up for his best friend before Serenity divorced him in a fit. Anyone would be jumping with joy to find out that their husband was the heir of the wealthiest family, which was a 0.001% chance of that ever happening. It was a jump in social status without even trying. That was not the case with Serenity. She was not the type to climb the socialdder and marry up. The only thing on her mind was that Zachary really had her fooled. Chapter 808 Chapter 808 Chapter 808 ¡°Ms. Hunt, regardless of the reasons Zachary wasn¡¯t honest about who he was, his feelings for you are true. It¡¯s true that he loves you. There¡¯s no doubt about that.¡± Serenity startedughing until her eyes welled up. Lifting her arm to rub her eyes, Serenity got up and said to Josh, ¡°Thank you for clearing that up for me, Mr. Bucham. I should leave you to your space. Bye.¡± Now that Serenity got the confirmation she needed, she did not want to spend another second in this ce. Without asking her to stay, Josh rose to his feet and walked out with her. He said, Ms. Hunt, I know you¡¯re in shock and mad right now. Zachary did you wrong, but it was with reason. There¡¯s no malicious intention behind his actions. Once you calm down, give him a chance to exin. No matter what, you¡¯re husband and wife.¡± Serenity was without a word, but her grimacing expression was telling. Josh went with Serenity to the bottom floor and saw her off outside the office building before going to his car. ¡°Seren.¡± Callum was waiting at the entrance of the office building. He got an SOS call from his brother and was told to stop his sister-inw from leaving. Zachary was on his way here. It was the most stressful thing ever when Callum came face-to-face with his sister-in-w¡¯s death stare. Well, Callum was Zachary¡¯s best bet since he was in the office while Zachary was away. Sure, Zachary was making haste, but he had not arrived yet. Hence, Callum had to stop Serenity from leaving until Zachary got here. Zachary feared Serenity would leave the office building and walk out of his life. Where was he supposed to find her then? The sight of the Yorks only made Serenity mad. She did not want to talk to any of them. She took strides past Callum. Callum tried to pull her back, but taking caution that they were inws, Callum did want to overstep and get physical with her. He took quick paces ahead and spread his arms apart to stop Serenity while saying, ¡°Don¡¯t go, Seren. Zachary is on his way. here. He¡¯ll get here soon.¡± Serenity shot him a murderous look. At that moment, Callum dared say that his sister-inw had the same chilling eyes as his brother. Was Serenity starting to resemble Zachary now that they had been married for a while? ¡°Callum. Hang on, no. Mr. Callum, please get out of the way.¡± With Serenity adding a salutation to his name, Callum let out a bitter smile. ¡°Come on, Seren, I¡¯m sorry. It¡¯s all our fault.¡± He was involved in lying to his sister-inw too. It was not just him, but the whole family deceived Serenity. No wonder Serenity saw red when she learned the truth. Her eyes were as chilly as the winter in December, and her face was as ck as thunder. ¡°Mr. Callum, I say move! You¡¯ll get iting if you don¡¯t get out of the way now.¡± Callum would not budge, He was tasked with the heavy responsibility of getting his sister-inw to stay. She looked rather scary right now, but his brother would rain hell on him if Serenity was not here on his arrival. After weighing his options, Callum decided Serenity was the lesser evil. Serenity jumped him with a punch. Callum knew how to fight. He quickly moved to the side, evading Serenity¡¯s attack. While Callum was dodging, Serenity made a run for it, but Callum came in her way again. She struck him once more. They were exchanging blows in front of the office building. The onlookers kept a distance and watched withouting forward to help. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Josh was on his way to pick Jasmine up when he heard about the fight. Stopping the car, he got out and ran to stop them. Serenity could take down a group of thugs, but her years spent on self-defense were no use against Josh and Callum. However hard she flipped out, the pair would not get out of her way and refused to let her leave. Chapter 809 Chapter 809 Chapter 809 Duncan drove Liberty to York Corporation. On the way, he met Jasmine, whose e-bike ran out of battery, and let the distressed girl hitch a ride with them. The bike was strapped to a pole and left by the side of the road. Jasmine nned to retrieve her e-bike once Serenity simmered down. ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Liberty and Jasmine jumped out of the car and raced toward Serenity. Sonny was somehow left behind and forgotten by his mother. Atst, Duncan got to hug Sonny. It was not like Sonny had a choice. His mom dashed out, forgetting that he was still. in Duncan¡¯s car. Duncan said he would carry the boy down, so Sonny let him. However, once they got out of the car, Duncan never let his feet touch the ground. In fact, Duncan took quick paces toward Serenity with Sonny in his arms. As Serenity was no match for Josh and Callum, there was no way she could leave. York Corporation. Serenity was getting sick and tired. With her sister here, Serenity finally had a meltdown and threw herself in her sister¡¯s arms. ¡°Liberty.¡± She cried in grievance as tears streamed down her cheeks. Heartbroken, Liberty held her tightly and woefully uttered, ¡°I¡¯m here.¡± Serenity sobbed and let her feelings out through tears before breaking free from her sister¡¯s embrace. She said, ¡°Liberty, I want to go home. A home with you in it.¡± All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Not Zachary¡¯s home. Liberty heart-wrenchingly wiped away Serenity¡¯s tears and murmured in a soft voice.¡± Alright. Let¡¯s go home.¡± She grabbed her sister¡¯s hand and caught sight of Sonny in Duncan¡¯s arms. It was then Liberty remembered her son. She took Sonny from Duncan and thanked him. ¡°I¡¯ll hold Sonny,¡± Jasmine jumped in. Liberty gave Sonny to Jasmine. ¡°Seren!¡± Callum came in the way of the sisters. He said to Liberty, ¡°My brother is on his way to the office now, Liberty. It¡¯s between them. Let them talk it out and figure out a way to move forward, alright?¡± Liberty snapped back, ¡°Mr. Callum, Seren doesn¡¯t want to talk to your brother right now. Please get out of the way. The Yorks are beyond our reach!¡± Still holding her sister by the hand, Liberty walked around Callum to take off. Callum anxiously followed while giving his brother a call ¡°Callum.¡± Zachary¡¯s husky voice was heard on the other end of the line ¡°Are you here yet, Zachary? Serenity¡¯s about to leave, and I can¡¯t keep her anymore.¡± Zachary replied in a fretful manner, ¡°Just a few more minutes. Callum, don¡¯t let her leave no matter what.¡± Callum made a wry face and answered, ¡°I can¡¯t hold her here much longer, Zachary You should have called the rest of the family to help.¡± His strength alone was not enough. Zachary barked, ¡°Just hold on a few more minutes!¡± He then ended the call. It was not that Zachary did not want to call his other brothers and cousins toe, but they worked further away from York Corporation. It would be toote by the time they arrived. Hence why Zachary had to count solely on Callum. Callum, Josh, and now Duncan were on Zachary¡¯s side. They pulled out all the stops and kept Serenity near the office building as long as they could. Fortunately, Zachary made it back in time. His vehicle convoy arrived just as Serenity was getting into the car. The iing Rolls Royce reminded Serenity of the one she often saw in Brynfield. It must belong to Zachary. Zachary said the car must belong to a fellow resident when she asked him about it. He was lying to her every second of the day. There was a familiar figure among Zachary¡¯s security team. At a closer look, she realized it was none other than Jim, the hired driver. Jim was not some hired driver. He was not somebody who ran errands for the righ price. Jim was Zachary¡¯s personal bodyguard! Chapter 810 Chapter 810 Chapter 810 Serenity¡¯s heart sank to the pit of her stomach. Zachary usually drove a national MPV. Did he deliberately buy the car to trick her? She bet he went around in an expensive car with his security detail in tow because that was how stylish the heir of the Yorks traveled! ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary got out of the car and tookrge strides over. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary approached the sisters, first apologizing to Liberty. ¡°I know I¡¯m in the wrong here, Liberty. Can you give me a moment with Seren?¡± Tilting her head, Liberty looked at her sister. Serenity callously retorted, ¡°What¡¯s there to talk about? You¡¯re the great Mr. York. You¡¯re up there, and I¡¯m down here. I¡¯m just a lowly citizen, and you¡¯re out of my league. I¡¯m not entitled to have a chat with you.¡± She dragged her sister along to leave. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary reached out to pull her back. Liberty let go of Serenity¡¯s arm and said, ¡°You should talk to him, Seren. No matter what, you should give him a chance to exin.¡± Serenity tried to shake Zachary¡¯s hand off, but he would not let go. Suddenly, Serenity lost it and pounded him like a lunatic. Zachary quietly took her outburst and waited until she was drained from the hammering to pull her into his arms. Zachary locked her in his arms and clung to her tightly. It was an oue he had expected. That was why he feared facing the truth. After a talk with Ben, Zachary took Ben¡¯s advice and mustered the courage to be truthful about everything. ¡°Let go, Zachary! Let go of me! You liar! B*stard!¡± Zachary kept Serenity¡¯s warmth close to him, refusing to loosen his grip as Serenity yelled and bit him. She did not hesitate to chomp down on his flesh. Although in pain, Zachary did not allow her to break free. She might just walk away from him the moment he let go. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. I¡¯m sorry.¡± All Zachary could utter was apologies. He owed her big time. After all, Zachary had kept the truth from her for a long time. Her mind flew back to when Zachary came down with the nasty flu. He probed her, asking under what circumstances would she leave him. She quoted domestic abuse, cheating, and endless lies to be the last straw. She also mentioned that she would not make amotion or say anything if she was leaving for real. After Serenity was exhausted from hitting, yelling, and biting, Zachary bent over and picked her up to carry her to his Rolls Royce. Serenity tried to put up a struggle, but she was out of energy. Since she had to face reality sooner orter, Serenity gave up the fight and let him carry her into the car. Soon, Zachary¡¯s Rolls Royce took off from York Corporation under the protection of his attending convoy. ¡°To the vi on the hilltop,¡± Zachary huskily instructed the driver.¡¯ Serenity then recalled Zachary lying about a mortgage on the vi. Apparently, he had not fully owned the vi since the house was still on a mortgage. Closing her eyes, Serenity did not even want to look at the man. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Every memory she had with him was all lies. Did he ever speak a word of truth to her? Zachary threw a huge fit one time because she had not kept him in the loop about Liberty. He made a huge fuss, saying that she did not see him as family. The fight nearly progressed into another silent treatment. In the end, he was the one who had fooled her the whole time. Talk about hypocrisy. In the car, Zacharytched onto Serenity, and her refusal to even look at him was killing Zachary inside. Their affection for each other was no more the moment he epted the interview.1 Would their rtionship ever get back to where it once was? Chapter 811 Chapter 811 Chapter 811 Back at the hilltop vi, Zachary wanted to carry Serenity out of the car. ¡°I¡¯ll get out by myself. I don¡¯t need you to carry me. Don¡¯t touch me!¡± Serenity refused to let him carry her and did not want to let him touch her again. After pushing him away, she got out of the car by herself. Brandt came out of the house. He was surprised to see Serenity and instinctively called out, ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Serenity said coldly, ¡°Don¡¯t call me Mrs. York. I¡¯m not Mrs. York. The great Mr. York is out of my league!¡± Her words were all barbed and sarcastic. She was really pissed off. She turned her head and said to Zachary, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you lived alone? Lying is second nature to you, isn¡¯t it? You don¡¯t even need toe up with a script. You lie as easily as you breathe.¡± His acting skills were too great, and she was not sharp enough to see through him. She was a fool. Just because she saw that he drove an MPV worth a few hundred thousand and lived in a local neighborhood instead of a vi, she thought that he really was just a sryman. She remembered him asking if she would believe it if he said he was the richest man in Wiltspoon. She would not believe him. That was because she felt that the York family was wealthy beyond her reach while she was just an ordinary woman. How could the great Mr. York marry her? When they first got married, Jasmine even teased her before, but she said that billionaires could not be picked off the street. There was no way her husband would turn out to be the richest man in Wiltspoon. She told Jasmine that thetter had read too many novels and was daydreaming. Now, she was eating her own words. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Zachary pursed his lips and looked at her silently. It was true he lied to her and he could not refute that. After Serenity stared at him coldly for a moment, she went past Brandt and entered the vi of her own volition. ¡°Sir, is the missus livid after she¡¯s found out?¡± Brandt added in concern, ¡°Shall I call Old Mrs. York over?¡± Old Mrs. York was the closest to the missus. Zachary was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°It¡¯ll only add fuel to the fire if Nanales now. It was Nana who brought us together, and it was she who concealed my identity and lied to Seren first. If Seren sees Nana, she¡¯ll get even angrier instead of calming down.¡± Serenity felt that the whole family were liars. They all cheated and lied to her! ¡°Nana won¡¯te now either. She probably slipped away faster than anyone else.¡± Grandma May was most active when she forced him to marry Serenity. When he was unwilling to marry a stranger, she called him unfilial. After being nagged and used of being unfilial several times by his nana, Zachary reluctantly agreed to her arrangement to spare his ears. Grandma May lied without thinking about the consequences. Now, Zachary had to face the consequences alone. ¡°Don¡¯t go inside without my word.¡± Zachary ordered in a low voice before entering the house. Brandt walked up to Jim and the others. He asked with concern, ¡°Will Mr. Zachary and the missus be all right?¡± Jim put away his silly expression and looked solemn. ¡°The missus is very angry, but no matter how she treats Mr. Zachary, he must face it. There¡¯s no way we can help. All we can do is pray for him.¡± Hopefully, Serenity would not mention divorce. Otherwise, Zachary would go crazy. Serenity sat on the sofa. She felt hungry. Chapterall She just remembered that she had not eaten yet. She should have lost her appetite because of her anger. Why was she hungry instead? Since hunger came knocking, she went looking for food. She would never starve herself because of Zachary. He was not worth it! Chapter 812 Chapter 812 Chapter 812 Serenity stood up and went into the kitchen. When Zachary came in from outside, he happened to see her figure in the kitchen He was silent. Serenity did not cook a lot. She only made herself a simple te of spaghetti, then came out with the te in her hands. When she saw Zachary, she merely nced at him before ignoring his presence and went to the table. She sat down and started eating. Zachary was worried she would refuse to eat or drink because she was angry. When he saw how healthy her appetite was, and how she could eat such arge te of spaghetti with relish, he felt conflicted. He sat down at the dining table and opened his mouth. ¡°Seren¡­¡± ¡°Shut up! Don¡¯t affect my appetite.¡± Zachary obediently shut his trap after being yelled at by his wife. He was at fault, so he lowered his ego and pride. As he watched her eat, he felt hungry too. However, he did not dare to leave. He was afraid she would take the opportunity to slip away if he did.All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. He could only endure his hunger and silently watched her eat the spaghetti. After she finished the meal, she stood up with the te and was just about to leave. ¡°I¡¯ll do it, Seren. I¡¯ll wash the dishes for you.¡± Zachary scrambled over to help her clean the dishes. Serenity did not refuse either. If he wanted to work, then he could work. She put the te back down on the table and left. After making sure she was just sitting on the sofa and not going outside, Zachary went into the kitchen to wash the dishes. He washed them as fast as he could along with some fruits, then cut them into pieces and ced them in a fruit bowl. ¡°Honey.¡± A ¡°Don¡¯t call me Honey!¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary quickly changed his form of address. His wife was angry, so whatever she said was final. ¡°Have some fruits.¡± Zachary brought the fruit bowl to Serenity. ¡°I¡¯m full from all this fury. I can¡¯t eat your fruits.¡± Zachary¡¯s hand holding the bowl froze, and he retracted his hand to ce the bowl on the coffee table. She had just eaten arge te of spaghetti, so she was naturally full. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren.¡± Zachary apologized sincerely. He also looked miserable. It was the result of being scolded and bitten by Serenity. When sheshed out, she also scratched his neck and left several bloody marks, which swelled up and looked rather frightening. She also left deep bite marks on him. However, it was fine. Those were marks his wife branded on his body. She marked him as her man! ¡°Tell me. Why did you lie to me? You lied to me for more than four months!¡± It had been more than four months since they got married. ¡°Seren, you know that we got married suddenly. In fact, I was forced by Nana. Nana likes you very much and wants to make you her granddaughter -inw, and I¡¯m her eldest grandson. She always said that I don¡¯t understand romance, and that I¡¯d never get a wife if she didn¡¯t interfere. That¡¯s why she forced me to marry you.¡± Serenity¡¯s expression changed again. It turned out that he was forced to marry her. No wonder he was so on guard against her when they first got married. ¡°You saved Nana, and Nana said she wanted me to repay her for raising me, but I thought it was your idea. I thought you were a scheming woman and wanted to marry into our family after hearing Nana talk about her excellent grandson. ¡°I also thought you were after our family¡¯s money¡­ Seren, at that time, we didn¡¯t have feelings for each other. We didn¡¯t know each other. You can¡¯t me me for thinking of you that way.¡± The main reason was his identity was a sensitive subject. He was the heir of the richest family in Wiltspoon and the head of York Corporation. He had it all, whether it was status, looks, money, or power. That was why he suspected that she was after his money. Chapter 813 Chapter 813 Chapter 813 ¡°I didn¡¯t even know you were from a rich family! What would I want from you? When we fought for the first time, I already told you that I have motives. I saw you had a house for me to live in, so I didn¡¯t have to rent a house. I saw you were mature and steady with a stable job, so my sister would be satisfied and assured.¡± Zachary said bitterly, ¡°Seren, I know you married me to reassure your sister, not because you wanted my money or me. It was a misunderstanding on my part. I was wrong. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. You can beat me or scold me if you want. Since I¡¯ve done something wrong, I should be punished. You can punish me however you want.¡± He would not deny the usations. Serenity red at him. ¡°At first, I hid my identity to test your character. Nana insisted that I marry you, but I wanted to know if you were a person worth spending the rest of my life with. That¡¯s why I hid my identity and lived with you like an ordinary person. ¡°As time passed, I¡¯vee to realize that you were a good person, and I slowly fell in love with you.¡± Zachary wanted to take Serenity¡¯s hand, but she pped it away fiercely. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren.¡± Serenity looked at him. After a long time, she asked, ¡°You wanted to test me at first, but what about after? You lied to me for more than four months. Four months! Have you determined that my character is good just now?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t dare tell youter because I was afraid you¡¯d leave me after learning the truth. I was scared. I didn¡¯t want to lose you.¡± Zachary reached for her hand again, but like earlier, she pped it away. However, this time, he grabbed her hand forcefully, pulled it up to his lips, and kissed it gently. His dark eyes looked at her with tenderness and guilt within. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. I ¡°Seren, I was terrified. In my entire life, I¡¯ve never been so afraid as I was after falling in love with you. I¡¯m afraid of losing you. I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll cut ties with me.¡± Serenity wrenched her hand back. ¡°You¡¯re afraid? You don¡¯t seem afraid at all. All I know is that you¡¯ve been lying to me. It¡¯s no wonder I had that nightmare. It was God giving me a sign. ¡°But I still continued to believe you stupidly I believed in whatever you said. I was so dumb. I was a fool to be led by the nose and cheated by you until now.¡± ¡°Seren¡­¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want to talk to you right now.¡± Serenity interjected him and stood up, saying coldly, ¡°Let me calm down and think about whether our marriage should continue.¡± Then, she turned to leave. She was in a state of rage now, and her feelings were in a mess. There was no way she could have a proper conversation with him. She wanted to go home. She wanted to go back to a home with only her sister and Sonny so she could take care of her heart which was stabbed by Zachary. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary quickly got up and chased her, growling as he walked. ¡°I won¡¯t divorce. Don¡¯t even think about a divorce!¡± Serenity ignored him. If he did not want a divorce, she could sue him for one! After being lied to for so long, Serenity was furious and indeed wanted to end the marriage. They did not match well, anyway. He was the high and mighty young heir of the York family. She was just an orphaned owner of a small bookstore. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary reached out to pull her, and she whirled around to swing her palm at his handsome face. However, just as her hand was about to hit his cheek, she changed the trajectory and pped him hard on the arm instead. At the same time, her foot kicked his knee. Zachary was caught off guard and was viciously kicked by her. His handsome face grimaced in pain. ¡°Seren, if you want to calm down, you can do so in our house. I won¡¯t say anything. I¡¯ll just sit next to you and watch you quietly, but you can¡¯t leave!¡± Chapter 814 Chapter 814 Chapter 814 Zachary had a feeling that if he let her go and allowed her to leave this vi, it would be difficult for him to see her again. He knew her temperament. ¡°Let me go, Zachary York! I don¡¯t want to talk to you right now. I don¡¯t even want to look at you!¡± When Zachary held onto her, Serenity lowered her head and bit the back of his hand. However, he still refused to let go. She was so angry that she threw punches and kicks at him. She was incredibly agitated. Zachary forcefully pressed her frenzied being into his arms. He bowed his head and sealed her mouth, trying to soothe her with a gentle kiss. However, she bit his lip so hard that he tasted blood. Left with no choice, Zacharynded a rabbit punch to knock her out. He then wrapped his arms around her limp body. He wiped the blood on his mouth, bent down to pick the unconscious Serenity up, and headed upstairs. After cing her in bed, he sat by her and looked at her. He knew she would be angry, but he did not expect her to react violently. Holding her hand, Zachary kissed the back of it while whispering, ¡°Seren, I know I was wrong. You can beat and scold me all you want, but you can¡¯t leave me. I won¡¯t divorce you.¡± He bent down again and dropped countless butterfly kisses on her face. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. He sat up, took out his phone, and saw that it was a call from Nana. He took a deep breath before answering her call. ¡°Zack, how¡¯s Seren? Is she downright furious?¡± ¡°Why do you ask when you already know the answer?¡± Zachary¡¯s tone was cold. ¡°It¡¯s normal for her to be angry after you lied to her for so long. Let her have her way and don¡¯t argue with her. You¡¯re the one at fault here. Where¡¯s Seren? Is she willing to talk to me? I¡¯ll put in a good word for you.¡± ¡°Nana, don¡¯t forget that you lied to her first.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Grandma May felt a little guilty. ¡°I did lie to her, but I didn¡¯t tell you to lie to her as well Even if she found out about my lie, she would only be surprised. ¡°However, you¡¯re different. You¡¯re her husband, the person she shares a bed with. It wasn¡¯t easy for the two of you to reach this point, and her trust in you was only growing. Now that you¡¯vee clean, it¡¯s only natural for her to be mad. It¡¯s because you lied to her from the start. Back then, you could¡¯ve told her your identity after you two got your marriage license.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Is Seren not willing to talk to me?¡± ¡°She reacted ferociously and wanted to leave me. I apologized and pulled her back, but she punched and kicked me. She even bit me, so I knocked her out.¡± ¡°You¡¯re just adding fuel to the fire. Seren will only be angrier when she wakes upter. Why don¡¯t you just turn into a sloth and cling onto her?¡± Zachary was rendered speechless again. Even if he could turn into a sloth, would he be able to force her to stay using that method? Of course, he knew he was making the situation worse and Serenity¡¯s temper would only be fouler when she woke up. However, that was the only thing he could do to make her stay. Either way, he would not let her leave his side or his territory! ¡°Zack, with Seren¡¯s fury right now, you should give her time to calm down, then apologize to her and communicate with her. That¡¯s the best method.¡± Zachary suddenly growled, ¡°She wants to leave me, Nana! She said she wants to consider whether our marriage should continue or not. She wants a divorce!¡± Grandma May¡¯s heart seized. Zachary was afraid of losing Serenity to the point of breaking down. Chapter 815 Chapter 815 Chapter 815 ¡°Don¡¯t panic, Zack. I¡¯ll go over there right now. Where are you?¡± Grandma May calmed Zachary¡¯s emotions. The old woman undeniably yed a part in how the couple ended up now. Zachary¡¯s tone softened a little after yelling. He said, ¡°It won¡¯t help even if youe, Nana. We all lied to Seren. All of us are liars to her. When she sees any of us, all she¡¯ll remember is that we deceived her for months.¡± Grandma May sighed and said, ¡°That¡¯s why I told you¡­ In that case, you think of a way to coax Seren. If you can¡¯t, then let her calm down for a few days. Don¡¯t push her too hard¡­¡± ¡°I won¡¯t let her out of my sight!¡± Zachary¡¯s domineering character was at full st. Grandma May was speechless. In the end, she said nothing and quietly hung up the phone. At the same time, she offered a few words of prayer for her grandson in her heart. His bad temper had not changed. It would not be that easy if he wanted to make up with Serenity. After being hung up on by his nana, Zachary called Jim and ordered, ¡°Send all the Valentine¡¯s Day gifts I prepared for Seren to my room and buy some roses to decorate the yard.¡± Ever since Zachary¡¯s interview that was quickly broadcasted on the inte, the group of bodyguards had been on tenterhooks, worried that Serenity would be furious when she found out. They saw with their own eyes how ruthless she was to Zachary in her anger. Everyone was worried about the sweet couple. They did not know how far the fighting would go. When they received Zachary¡¯smand, Jim thought that he had sessfully coaxed Serenity. His tense mood rxed, and he replied in a cheerful tone, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll send the gifts you prepared right away.¡± Zachary said in a heavy voice, ¡°Be quick.¡± Serenity would wake up soon. Thus, the bodyguards sent Zachary¡¯s gifts for Serenity to the vi as soon as possible. They brought the gifts upstairs and knocked on Zachary¡¯s door. When they saw the missus lying motionless on the bed, Jim was shocked and blurted out, ¡°Mr. Zachary, what happened to the missus?¡± All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Zachary¡¯s face was tense. He pursed his lips into a thin line and stared intently at Serenity without saying a word. Only then did the bodyguards realize that they were too naive. The missus had not forgiven Mr. Zachary at all. Looking at the current circumstance, it was either she fainted from anger, or Mr. Zachary was forced to knock her unconscious. The bodyguards figured that with Mr. Zachary¡¯s style, thetter was more probable. s! They sighed in their hearts. Mr. Zachary was too foolish. How could he have knocked her out? He was just adding fuel to the fire! Zachary had always beenposed. Serenity was the only one who could cause him to lose his cool and make a mistake. The bodyguards put down the presents and quickly withdrew. Just two minutes after they went out, Serenity woke up. She only felt pain in the lower back of her neck. When she opened her eyes to see Zachary¡¯s deadpan face, the events from before she lost consciousness flooded into her brain like a tsunami, quickly brewing a storm in her mind again. Chapter 816 Chapter 816 Chapter 816 ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary saw her merely looking at him without speaking and called out anxiously,¡± Are you okay?¡± Did he use too much force? Did he damage her? ¡°Zachary York!¡± Serenity snapped back to her senses and yelled his name through gnashed teeth She sat up and pounced on him like a ferocious lion, grabbing his cor with one hand and chopping the back of his neck with the other. She screamed furiously, ¡°You jerk! You b*stard! How could you have knocked me out?!¡± Her neck hurt like hell! This b*stard said that he loved her. Was knocking her out and giving her physical pain his way of showing that? Screw him! She would not believe a single word he said. She lived in the lies he weaved for the past four months. Her trust in him had dropped to the negatives! ¡°Seren, Seren.¡± Zachary did not let Serenity chop his neck for fear that she would really knock him. out and run away. When she vented some of her anger, he forcefully took her into his arms like before and hugged her tightly, gently immobilizing her. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. ¡°Seren, I¡¯m sorry. I know I shouldn¡¯t have knocked you out, but I didn¡¯t know how to make you stay. Don¡¯t leave me, okay? I promise you¨CI¡¯ll never lie to you again! Don¡¯t leave me, Seren!¡± Zachary did not dare imagine the rest of his life without Serenity. ¡°Let go of me! I won¡¯t believe a single word thates out of your mouth. Your promises are worth sh*t! You¡¯ve promised me so many things, yet you were lying to me every time! I told you that we would break up if you kept lying to me! ¡°I don¡¯t want to live in one lie after another. I don¡¯t know which one is the real you. I don¡¯t know which words you say are true. Zachary, you¡¯d better let me go, or I¡¯ll never forgive you! ¡°You even knocked me out. You knocked me out¡­ My neck hurts like hell now. You jerk, all you know is to cause me pain. If I¡¯d known you were the heir of the York family, I¡¯d rather have gone to Shawn to lie to my sister than marry you!¡± At the mention of his love rival that had just been taken out by the said rival¡¯s parents, Zachary was both afraid and bitter. He feared Serenity would go to Shawn in a fit of rage after finding out that he lied to her. It had been some time since Shawn was sent to thepany¡¯s branch in Havenmill by his parents. He had not called Serenity since, but Zachary knew the guy had not given up on her. If Serenity called him, he would be able to leave everything behind and fly back immediately¡­ ¡°Don¡¯t you dare try to look for Shawn! I¨CI¡¯ll break your¡­ I¡¯ll lock you in this house so you can¡¯t leave. I¡¯ll confiscate all yourmunication devices!¡± Zachary let out a low growl, making Serenity look straight at him. After his roar, he panicked again. He should not have said that. It was just like at the beginning of their marriage. Sometimes, he meant well, but his mouth was brusque, and what he said actually hurt people¡¯s feelings. He was sharp and decisive when dealing with business, but when it came to emotional problems, he was even worse than a teenager. ¡°That¡¯s all you know how to do. All you do is threaten me and boss me around. This is the real you, isn¡¯t it? You¡¯re the eldest grandson of the York family, born with a golden spoon in your mouth. No matter if you¡¯re at home or outside, everything revolves around you. ¡°Your brothers defer to you and obey your arrangement no matter what you say or do. You¡¯re the center of the world. In thepany, you¡¯re the head so everything you say isw.¡± Chapter 817 Chapter 817 Chapter 817 ¡°This is your true personality. You¡¯re always self¨Ccentered and lord over everything You¡¯re overbearing, arrogant, egotistical, and even paranoid!¡± Serenity¡¯s words were full of mockery. That was Zachary¡¯s character. He behaved the same way at the beginning of their marriage. Even if he pretended to be an ordinary person, his mannerisms were ingrained in him and could not be changed. It was only after the couple¡¯s feelings warmed up and they had two conflicts that his overbearing self improved slightly. Now, he revealed his true colors again. It was suffocating to be with a Zachary York like that. That was especially true for Serenity, a woman who liked her independence. If she had a conflict with a man like Zachary, the fight would escte and only worsen. Zachary clearly wanted to calm Serenity down, but he kept making mistakes that exacerbated his case, causing her anger to soar even higher. There was no way to extinguish the fury now. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary let her go and instead touched her face lightly, saying as if he was in pain, Don¡¯t go to Shawn, okay? It took me a lot of effort to drive him out of Wiltspoon so he wouldn¡¯t be able to see you again. Don¡¯t go to him.¡± ¡°You drove Shawn out of Wiltspoon? Did you say something to Aunt Rachel?¡± After her questioning, she added wryly, ¡°What do I have to be surprised about? I don¡¯t even know how many things you¡¯ve done behind my back. Heh. Zachary, do you even regard me as your family? ¡°Then again, I¡¯m not your family. Women are still outsiders even if they marry into another family. They¡¯re just guests. With what audacity could I expect you to treat me as family¡­ You kept so many things from me and lied to me for so long. You¡¯re just treating me like an outsider¡­¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes reddened with injustice as she spoke, but she forced herself not to cry. Chapter HT 2/3 She did not want to cry in front of Zachary. She did not want to beforted by a hypocrite like him. ¡°Seren, you¡¯re my family. You¡¯re the wife I want to spend the rest of my life with. I know I let you down. I hurt you and destroyed your trust in me, but I promise¡­¡± Serenity looked at him coldly. The ice and obvious mockery in her eyes made it so Zachary could not finish his sentence. His promise was not worth anything to her anymore. Zachary bowed his head, kissed her face and lips, and said, ¡°Seren, the men of the York family never get divorced. I¡¯ll never divorce you!¡± Serenity pushed him away and tried to get out of bed. He did not want to divorce, but she did. Of course, she would not say it out loud now, lest that jerk knock her out again. She was so angry! Her neck hurt like hell! ¡°Where are you going, Seren? You can¡¯t go anywhere!¡± Zachary pulled her back in fright and jumped out of bed, hugging her waist from behind. ¡°Look, Seren. I prepared these money flowers for you. It¡¯s a Valentine¡¯s Day gift. There are also thirty sets of jewelry so you can wear a different one every day of the month. There are also bags, skin care products, and cosmetics. Don¡¯t use the skin care products that Elisa gives you anymore. Your husband can afford them for you.¡± He forcefully pulled Serenity to the vanity, picked up two sets of keys on the table, then stuffed them into her hands, saying, ¡°Here are the keys for the vi and car I bought for you. ¡°Do you like the gifts I got for you, Seren? It¡¯s my first Valentine¡¯s Day, so I copied what people usually do since I have no experience. Tell me if you don¡¯t like them and I¡¯ll get you anything you want as long as I can obtain it.¡± He did not dare guarantee things that he could not get. What if she asked for the stars in the sky? Serenity took the two bunches of keys and pped the back of his hand. When he loosened his grip a little, she stepped on his foot so hard that he instinctively jumped up and released her. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only She threw the two keyrings to his chest and said coldly, ¡°Thank you for the generosity, Mr. York, but I can¡¯t afford to ept it!¡± Then, she turned to leave. ¡°Seren!¡± ¡°Zachary York.¡± When Zachary was about to catch up, Serenity stopped, turned around, and coldly warned him, ¡°If you dare sneak up behind me and knock me out again, I¡¯ll cut ties with you immediately!¡± Zachary was too afraid to sneak up on her again. He also could not bear to knock her out again. He felt distressed because her neck would hurt. Chapter BOR Chapter 818 Chapter 818 Chapter 818 Serenity walked out of the room. Zachary followed suit. He kept silent and walked behind her without making a peep She went downstairs, and he followed her downstairs. She went outside, and he followed her outside. In short, he was like her shadow now. Serenity walked up to the gate of the vi and tried to open the side gate but found it locked. Turning around, she looked at him and coldly ordered, ¡°Give me the keys.¡± Brandt, one of the bodyguards, and the other servants followed at a distance. No one darede forward to talk to them. They all saw how furious Serenity was. Even her words were like ice. Zachary was now her shadow. Zachary took out the key, but instead of giving it to her, he raised his hand and flung it far over and out of the gate. He shrugged and said, ¡°I don¡¯t have the keys.¡± Serenity wanted to explode from anger. She really wanted to grab him by the cor and give him a good beating. She looked at Brandt and the others. Brandt quickly said, ¡°Don¡¯t look at me. I don¡¯t have the keys either.¡± Even if he did, he would not give them to her. The others also hurriedly shook their heads. ¡°We don¡¯t have the keys either. Don¡¯t look at us.¡± Have mercy! Serenity knew that as long as Zachary refused to let her out, those people would not open the door for her even if they had the keys. She looked at the heights of the gate and walls. The gate was a little higher, so it would not be easy to climb over to get out. The walls looked to be around nine foot high. The walls surrounding his vis were always built that high. However, that came as no surprise as it was in line with Zachary¡¯s style. He did not like the prying eyes of others. The high walls could block out snoopy eyes and protect his privacy. Serenity learned kickboxing, but she did not know how to leap out of a nine¨Cfoot¨Chigh wall. She turned and wandered around the courtyard, looking for adder. Finally, she found one in the greenhouse. Brandt was speechless. Uh¨Coh, he should have hidden thedder. Serenity was about to pick up thedder to climb the wall. ¡°Honey, I¡¯ll handle the heavy lifting.¡± Zachary immediately grabbed thedder that Serenity was about to take, then rushed to the wall with it as fast as he could. Jim was perceptive and hurriedly moved a high stool for Zachary to step on. Then, Zachary threw thedder outside. Serenity was speechless. ¡°Zachary York!¡± Serenity yelled his name through gritted teeth. ¡°You b*stard!¡± All he knew how to do was make her angry. If he graciously let her leave and allowed her to calm down, they could still have a civil conversation. However, he would not let her leave at all. He was putting her R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only under house arrest! Chapter 819 Chapter 819 Chapter 819 The enraged and hateful Serenity who could not get out finally went back into the house and locked herself in a guest room. She pulled out her cell phone, wanting to ask her sister or best friend for help, but found that it had already run out of battery. ¡°The heavens sure are testing me!¡± Zachary did not pester Serenity when she locked herself in the guest room. He was looking for help too. He went to Josh out of habit. Josh had just sent Jasmine back to the bookstore after bringing a charger to charge her e¨Cbike. ¡°Mr. Bucham, could you ask Zachary what he did to Seren?¡± Jasmine was concerned about Serenity, who was forcibly taken away by Zachary. Josh hummed. ¡°I¡¯ll call him now to ask.¡± That being said, Josh had a bad feeling in his heart. He knew Zachary inside out. Zachary most likely did not handle it well. Well, he was suffering the consequences of deceiving his wife.R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Of course, he deserved it. In the beginning, he concealed his identity to examine Serenity¡¯s character. This was something everyone could understand. However, he could havee clean not muchter on, but he hesitated and harbored all kinds of worries, prolonging the deceit until now. It would be weirder if Serenity did not get angry. Josh was just about to call Zachary when his phone rang. He looked at the screen and said to Jasmine, ¡°It¡¯s Zachary.¡± ¡°Answer it,¡± Jasmine said anxiously, wanting to answer the call for Josh. Josh picked up the call, and Jasmine leaned closer to listen in on the conversation. ¡°Josh, help me.¡± Zachary said tiredly, ¡°Serenity is really mad. I can¡¯t coax her. I don¡¯t know what to do. Josh, tell me. What am I supposed to do? She wants to leave me. She¡¯s definitely going to leave me. I¡¯m sure she¡¯ll kick me into the corner and bury me away. ¡°She even said she wouldn¡¯t have married me if she knew I was the heir of the Yorks. She said she¡¯d rather look for Shawn to lie to her sister. Is she going to be with Shawn after kicking me out of the picture? I¡¯ll never allow it! If she dares go to Shawn, I¡¯ll lock her up in my vi so she can¡¯t leave my sight!¡± Josh and Jasmine were speechless. Jasmine snatched Josh¡¯s phone and said to Zachary, ¡°Zachary, if you want Serenity to calm down, you¡¯d better let her out. Keeping her under house arrest will only make her angrier. ¡°Even if she wants to leave you, she¡¯ll do it out in the open. She won¡¯t sneak off. Serenity never runs away when things go wrong. She¡¯ll deal with matters between you both openly and honestly. ¡°Let here back and confide with her sister. Let her calm down. This is the most important thing you should do.¡± Panic crept in again and he yelled in a low voice, ¡°I can¡¯t do it. I¡¯m scared to do it. It¡¯ll be hard for me to see her again if she leaves. She¡¯s my wife, so she should live where I live. I¡¯m not imprisoning her. She¡¯s just staying in our house! ¡°She¡¯ll leave me. She said before that a true farewell is done without saying a word. She¡¯ll leave quietly without disturbing me. If I let her out of this vi, she¡¯ll immediately pack her bags and go far away. Where will I find her if that happens?¡± Chapter 820 Chapter 820 Chapter 820 Jasmine said, ¡°I know Seren better than you do. I can assure you that she won¡¯t do that, so let her come back.¡± ¡°You¡¯re not her. I can¡¯t trust your assurance.¡± Jasmine was speechless. He was like a rock, unwilling to listen to a single word she said. Josh quickly took the phone back andforted Jasmine. ¡°Don¡¯t mind him. He¡¯s going crazy. He hasn¡¯t experienced anything like this before, so it¡¯s normal for him to handle it badly. You¡¯ll be the one angered if you take him seriously.¡± Jasmine opened her mouth but was at a loss for words. Zachary was usually mature and calm. Although his expression was always solemn, he was excellent at handling people. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Unexpectedly, he was now confining Serenity to his side and forbidding her froming back. ¡°Zachary, how¡¯s Serenity now?¡± Josh asked with concern, ¡°What did you do to her?¡± ¡°I¨CI didn¡¯t do anything to her. She wanted to leave, so I locked the gate and threw the keys away. She wanted to climb over the wall, so I threw thedder away as well. Then, she got angry and locked herself in a room. ¡°Josh, I don¡¯t know what I should do. You must be more clear¨Cheaded than me now. Tell me, what am I supposed to do? I can¡¯t think of anything right now. My head is a mess filled with panic and confusion.¡± When Zachary fell in love, he fell hard. Serenity had already be the most important woman in his life. He could not bear the pain of losing her. The reason he never came clean until now was that he was afraid of losing her. Remy suggested he pick a special day when Serenity was happy to confess to her in a different way, which he did. However, the storm still happened. Chapt He was drenched to his bones and could not see the path in front of him. He did not know which direction to go. Throughout his thirty years of living, this was Zachary¡¯s first time feeling this magnitude of helplessness. He had always been confident. He always felt that there was nothing he could not handle. Josh thought about it and advised, ¡°Zachary, I think Jasmine is right. Although Serenity and you are a couple, you¡¯ve only known each other for four months, while Jasmine has known her for more than ten years. She knows Serenity better than you do. ¡°Do as she says and let Serenitye back to simmer down. Let her confide in her sister and Jasmine. I believe everyone will advise her to make up with you, not break up. Right, Jasmine?¡± Jasmine answered in her mind, ¡®I won¡¯t advise Seren. I¡¯ll support any decision she makes! ¡®This is Seren¡¯s life. Even if I¡¯m her best friend, I can¡¯t make the call for her. She¡¯ll decide for herself after she calms down.¡® ¡°I know I shouldn¡¯t do this, but I can¡¯t bring myself to let Seren leave. Yes, I haven¡¯t known her for that long, but I¡¯m her husband. I¡¯m the person she shares a bed with. I know her temperament very well. ¡°I dare say, as soon as I let her go, she¡¯ll leave me. She¡¯ll pack her bags and leave Wiltspoon quietly to hide somewhere I don¡¯t know. Her sister and all her friends will help her.¡± Josh paused before responding, ¡°Zachary, I think you need to calm down as well. Don¡¯t keep thinking that Serenity will leave you. You need to figure out what you need to do to ease her anger and trust you again.¡± Zachary said irritably, ¡°I can¡¯t calm down. I don¡¯t know what I¡¯m supposed to do to soothe her. It¡¯s like she gets angrier no matter what I do. I had to knock her unconscious in order to get her to stay.¡± Josh wanted to swear at his best friend. Zachary¡¯s stupidity when it came to handling an emotional crisis was really challenging Josh¡¯s perception of him Chapter 821 Chapter 821 Chapter 821 ¡°Let me calm down, Zachary. I¡¯ll call you back when I think of a solution, but your mustn¡¯t do anything to hurt Serenity again. Otherwise, you really won¡¯t be able to get her back.¡± Josh was so angry with Zachary that he wanted to hurry up and hang up the phone. so he could calm down. He did not want to burst out in expletives in front of Jasmine since he was trying to maintain his good image as Mr. Bucham. After what happened to Zachary, Josh decided to be one hundred percent sincere when treating Jasmine. He would not lie or deceive her as Zachary did to Serenity. He ended the call before Zachary could respond. ¡°Why did you hang up? I still wanted to persuade him. Judging by what he said, he¡¯ll only make Serenity angrier. She might even start to hate him.¡± Josh said, ¡°Didn¡¯t you hear what he said? Even I¡¯m speechless and getting angry too. I need to take a step back. How did I get a boss with a negative EQ like him? ¡°Ugh, why is my life so hard?!¡± Josh sighed. He never onceined no matter what problems Zachary asked him to solve. However, when Zachary sought help for his rtionship problems, Josh got a headache. The main problem was that Zachary¡¯s domineering attitude that he had had since birth was acting up again, and at full st. ¡°I have a feeling that they won¡¯t make up for at least a few months.¡±All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Jasmine thought the same and said, ¡°The Serenity I know will bring up divorce, but I can guarantee that she won¡¯t run away from this problem. She¡¯ll definitely talk to him about the divorce.¡± Maybe she was even writing the divorce agreement at this moment. Hearing Jasmine¡¯s words, Josh hurriedly said, ¡°Jasmine, you have to persuade Serenity not to divorce Zachary, or many people will die, and the first to bear the brunt is me. I¡¯m courting you now, so you won¡¯t want me to die, right? If I die now, other people might say that you¡¯re a jinx who kills men who try to pursue you.¡± Jasmine pped his arm and scolded him. ¡°You¡¯re the jinx! I¡¯ve always been lucky in my life. My mom had my fortune read and said that I would be rich and prosperous in the future. I¡¯ll have bup sacks full of money and a fortune of over a hundred million.¡± Josh grinned. ¡°That fortune¨Cteller is urate. You¡¯ll be rich and prosperous if you marry me. If you like keeping money in bup sacks, I¡¯ll buy two dozen sacks for you and take out all my savings so you can keep them in the sacks. You won¡¯t just have a hundred million. You¡¯ll have several billion.¡± Jasmine pped him again. ¡°In your dreams. Why are you thinking about marriage when I haven¡¯t even agreed to be your girlfriend? After what happened to Serenity now, I need to examine you properly. If you¡¯re also full of lies like Mr. York, we can just stay friends.¡± She wanted to say that they would not even be friends, but considering how he knew a lot of gossip which could satisfy her curiosity, she decided to remain friends with him. ¡°No, absolutely not. I¡¯m much more sincere than Zachary. Besides, our situations are different. We know who each other are, but Zachary was nagged by his grandmother and forced to marry Serenity. ¡°It¡¯s actually very normal for him to conceal his identity. I think many people will understand his actions.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°It¡¯s normal to conceal his identity in the beginning, and it¡¯s also understandable, but he chose to hide it when he fell in love with Serenityter on. That¡¯s what¡¯s making her angry.¡± ¡°He¡¯s just afraid of losing her.¡± ¡°So why did he dare reveal it now? Is he not afraid of losing her anymore? Is he emboldened now because he thought Seren and him are a real couple?¡± Josh paused before saying, ¡°Zachary was conflicted too. He went to Annenburgst year to attend the wedding of FC & Co.¡¯s boss, and he also asked for advice from Remy. Upon his return, he started making arrangements toe clean.¡± Chapter 822 Chapter 822 Chapter 822 ¡°It¡¯s not that he¡¯s not afraid of losing her anymore, but decided to face the consequences of his deception. He has mustered the courage to face reality, but now, he¡¯s going crazy from his fear and made another small mistake.¡± Jasmine sighed. ¡°We can understand because it¡¯s not happening to us, but we can¡¯t experience Seren¡¯s hurt and anger. In any case, I won¡¯t advise her. Even if I wanted to, I wouldn¡¯t do it now. She¡¯s the one who was wronged, so why should I help Zachary? Wouldn¡¯t it make her feel more aggrieved? ¡°She was tricked so badly by the person she shares a bed with. Are we supposed to advise her to forgive Zachary instead of helping her vent her anger? I can¡¯t do that. I would beat Zachary up on her behalf if I could. ¡°I wonder if Mr. Stone knows. He can step in to beat Zachary up since he¡¯s her cousin. I¡¯ll be relieved if I see that.¡± Josh was speechless. Zachary had indeed managed to infuriate a lot of people. ¡°Oh, Elisa. She told me she¡¯d be back in two days. She¡¯ll know that Zachary is Serenity¡¯s husband as soon as shees back. She used to be crazy for him. Do you think she¡¯ll do something to Serenity if she finds out that Serenity married him?¡± Jasmine had a headache just thinking about it. ¡°I don¡¯t know what¡¯s going on anymore. Stuff like this is only supposed to happen in novels. Sure enough, fictions are inspired by real life.¡± Josh quickly asked, ¡°Which novel is that? How did the male lead finally beg the female lead to forgive him? I¡¯ll rmend Zachary to take a look and learn from it.¡± Jasmine said honestly, ¡°It¡¯s a serialized novel, so the author hasn¡¯t written that far yet. I have no idea either how the female lead finally forgave the male lead.¡± Josh looked at her, incredibly speechless. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like that. I¡¯m not the author. The answer won¡¯te from staring at my face. If you really want to help Zachary, do as I say and advise him to return Seren¡¯s freedom. Don¡¯t let him imprison her in his vi. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. ¡°Even if they¡¯re husband and wife, he doesn¡¯t have the right to restrict her freedom.¡± Josh said wryly, ¡°You heard what Zachary said earlier. Do you think he¡¯ll listen to my advice now? Didn¡¯t you see that I hung up on him because I got so angry? He¡¯s convinced that letting Serenity out now is equivalent to losing her. ¡°He won¡¯t listen to anything anyone says now. Just leave him be. He has to be hurt before he can learn.¡± Every human would experience hurt in their life. The journey of growth was not smooth sailing and there would always be countless setbacks. Jasmine was silent for a moment before walking away. ¡°Where are you going, Jasmine?¡± ¡°I¡¯m getting food. I¡¯m hungry since I didn¡¯t have lunch.¡± Jasmine forgot to eat because of Serenity. If not for her hunger, she would not have remembered to fill her stomach. ¡°I haven¡¯t eaten either. Don¡¯t keep eating snacks. I¡¯ll order food delivery.¡± Josh called Wiltspoon Hotel and made the order as he spoke. Chapter 823 Chapter 823 Chapter 823 Meanwhile, what was someone who locked herself in the guest room doing? Serenity found a pen and paper in the room. She sat down in front of the sofa, put the paper on the coffee table, and then plopped down to carefully write a divorce agreement. The couple did not buy another house after the marriage, so there was no property to divide. He once said that he would leave the house in Brynfield to her, as well as the national MPV, if they divorced. Serenity did not want them. She did not want the house he used to deceive her! She did not want his car either. The car she was driving now was bought with Zachary¡¯s money. She would pay him the full amount after the divorce. She would not split his property or require him topensate for her youth that sort of thing, or anything at all. They would each keep whatever assets under their names, and no one would owe the other anything. She just needed him to sign the paper. If he wanted her topensate for the loss of his youth or the likes, she was willing to give him a little. After all, the great Mr. York lowered himself to marry someone like her, so he deserved some compensation from her. However, she would not agree if he asked for more. She would onlypensate him with a sum of money within her ability. Knock, knock. Someone was at the door. ¡°Seren, can you open the door and let me in?¡± It was Zachary. Serenity ignored him. She would only get angry by just looking at him. ¡°Seren, you¡¯ve been inside for a long time. Aren¡¯t you feeling stuffy? Come on out. I¡¯l apany you for a walk in the yard. There are a lot of flowers in our yard and they¡¯re really beautiful. Why don¡¯t you come downstairs and enjoy the blooms? I had it specially decorated for you.¡± Serenity remained silent and did not open the door. ¡°Seren, are you hungry? I had someone cook your favorite dishes. You¡¯ll be able to smell the aroma if you just slightly open the door. Look, the sun is almost setting You must be hungry now.¡± Zachary used food again to coax Serenity into opening the door. When there was no movement from inside the room, he continued, ¡°Seren, I¡¯m really hungry. I haven¡¯t eaten anything since noon, and it¡¯s almost dinner now. I won¡¯t eat if you don¡¯te out. I¡¯ll stay hungry with you.¡± ¡°Get lost! I don¡¯t want to talk to you. You¡¯re a liar!¡± Serenity yelled. Zachary choked as his heart felt suffocated. He stood at the door for a long time before silently going downstairs. Then, he told the maids to go upstairs to knock on the door and deliberately threatened them, ¡°If you can¡¯t get the missus to open the door ande out, I¡¯ll fire all of you and you¡¯ll be jobless.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. The maids were speechless. That was too much pressure! Thus, they went upstairs together and knocked on Serenity¡¯s room door. ¡°Missus, it¡¯s Felicia. Can you open the door please?¡± Felicia, who was in charge of knocking the door, was the representative in the negotiation¡± with Serenity. Serenity finished writing the divorce agreement, picked it up, and read it several times to make sure there were no problems. She took the document, stood up from the sofa, and walked to the door. Felicia was still persuading her through the door. ¡°Missus, Mr. Zachary is very worried about you. Come downstairs to eat. Mr. Zachary hasn¡¯t eaten anything all day. He¡¯ll ruin his health.¡± Serenity went to unlock the door and pulled it open. ¡°Missus.¡± The maids were overjoyed when Serenity opened the door. Their jobs were saved. ¡°Missus, you must be hungry. Dinner is ready.¡± Serenity said indifferently, ¡°Don¡¯t call me Missus. I won¡¯t be your missus soon. Where¡¯s Zachary?¡± Felicia naturally spoke up for Zachary and said, ¡°Missus, Mr. Zachary had his difficulties when he lied to you. He¡¯s downstairs now.¡± ¡°What difficulties does he have? He doesn¡¯t have any hardships at all. He was on guard against me and didn¡¯t trust me, so he treated me like I was a thief!¡± She knew how he had misunderstood her and had his walls up against her. Chapter 824 Chapter 824 Chapter 824 Back then, she did not care because she was not in love with him. Now that she was, she cared after learning the truth. Her heart clenched in pain. When she thought about the recent time spent together and his affection toward her, her heart felt even more painful, and her fury was reignited too. Was his adoration fake? Was it part of his deception too? Her neck still hurt a little. That jerk! Zachary York was a jerk! Felicia and the others were silent. All of them were cognizant of Zachary¡¯s web of lies to Serenity from the beginning. ¡°Do any of you have an Apple charger? My phone is out of battery. Lend me a charger for a while.¡± Felicia was about to reply when her colleague next to her nudged her lightly. She snapped back to her senses and quickly said, ¡°Mr. Zachary has a phone of the same brand. You can borrow a charger from him.¡± Their discreet movements did not go past Serenity¡¯s eyes. She knew that without Zachary¡¯s consent, she would not even have the chance to charge her phone. Was Zachary going topletely lock her up in this vi and forbid her from contacting the outside world? Did he think he could keep her by doing so? He could keep her body, but he could not keep her heart! Serenity did not talk to the maids anymore and went downstairs with the divorce agreement. While descending, she saw Zachary sitting on the sofa. He was holding his cell phone and seemed to be messaging someone. When he heard her footsteps, he immediately put the phone back into his pocket and quickly got up to greet her. ¡°Honey.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t call me Honey!¡± Serenity¡¯s expression was as dark as charcoal again. There was no helping it. Her expression turned bitter whenever she saw him now All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary corrected himself. ¡°You must be hungry. Let¡¯s have dinner.¡± He reached out for Serenity¡¯s hand, but she avoided him. She went past him and straight to the couch, then put the written divorce agreement on the coffee table and said coldly, ¡°This is what I wrote. Take a look and sign it if there¡¯s no problem.¡± ¡°What is it?¡± Zachary came over and nced at it, and his face changed dramatically. He suddenly grabbed the paper and tore it to pieces without even looking at it. He yelled, ¡°I won¡¯t divorce! Don¡¯t even think about divorcing me! You¡¯re mine in life, and you¡¯ll still be mine in death! We¡¯ll live and die together! ¡°I¡¯ll never divorce you! You won¡¯t be able to leave me unless you stab me to death. and step over my corpse!¡± Serenity red at him angrily. If looks could kill, he would have been killed by her countless times. ¡°You¡¯re simply unreasonable. There¡¯s no way tomunicate with you!¡± ¡°Yes, I¡¯m unreasonable. And yes, there¡¯s no way tomunicate with me. Bottom line is, you¡¯re my wife. You¡¯ll only be my wife in your life. You¡¯ll never get rid of me!¡± Serenity gnashed her teeth in anger. If she continued to talk to him, she was afraid she would grind her teeth into dust. It was infuriating. She turned around and left, unable to talk about the divorce now. She did not even want to talk to him. ¡°Serenity!¡± Zachary reached out and grabbed her arm. He yanked her back into his arms forcefully and lowered his head to kiss her frantically. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I¡¯m sorry, Serenity¡­¡± Chapter 825 Chapter 825 Chapter 825 Serenity struggled and finally managed to push him away, but he wanted to continue. She was so angry that she swung her hand at him. The p resounded across the room and shocked Brandt and the maids. Zachary was also stunned. He looked at Serenity¡¯s face, which was red from the anger within. When she red at him, her eyes gradually reddened, and he saw tears brimming at the corners of her eyes. He had again brought her more pain and further angered her. Zachary med himself. He thought his warmth could make her calm down¡­ Brandt snapped back to his senses and hurriedly sent a message to Sam since thetter was the actual butler here. Brandt was only filling in for Sam since Sam was on leave, but he felt he could no longer handle the situation here. He had to call Sam back. It was frightening. The missus actually raised her hand against Mr. Zachary. This was a scene they had never witnessed in all the years they had worked for the Yorks. The men of the York family had always doted on their wives. As long as they were. married and the couple¡¯s feelings were stable, they would get along lovingly. asionally, there would be small quarrels or misunderstandings, but they were all resolved quickly. No one had ever gotten physical like the missus. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary pulled up the hand Serenity used to hit his face with and asked gently, ¡°Does your hand hurt?¡± Serenity wrenched her hand back and turned her face away, but she raised her hand to rub her eyes. She then turned around and looked at him again, saying, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Zachary, but please leave me some dignity, okay?¡± She did not like it when he forced a kiss on her whenever she was angry; as if showing no ounce of respect for her. Zachary looked at her deeply. Chapter 82 He lost it. When he saw the divorce agreement she drafted, he momentarily exploded in rage. Yes, he was wrong for lying to her, but she went as far as to draft a divorce agreement. He only grew impulsive because she was not giving him any leeway. ¡°If you have an affair, use violence on me, or lie to me countless times, I¡¯ll leave you,¡± -that was what Serenity said before. Only at that moment did Zachary realize that Serenity was a woman of her word. ¡°Zachary, we¡¯re both a mess now, and neither of us is calm. Please let me leave so we can take a breather, okay? Is there a point in you putting me under house arrest? You¡¯ll only anger me further. ¡°You¡¯re overbearing. You¡¯re always so self-centered and inconsiderate of others. Think about it. If our roles were reversed, if I was the one who lied to you for more than four months, how would you feel? You lied to me, but you¡¯re not even allowing me to get angry? Am I supposed to pop confetti to celebrate your deception?¡± Serenity felt it was Zachary¡¯s nature to be overbearing. It would be a Sisyphean task to make him change this part of him. Now, his domineering trait and paranoia were suffocating her. ¡°Divorce is not an option!¡± Zachary added in a low voice, ¡°Seren, I didn¡¯t say I was right in deceiving you, and I¡¯m not forbidding you from getting angry. Hit me or scold me, but you can¡¯t just bring up divorce to me. ¡°Let¡¯s not talk about divorce again, okay? I can¡¯t bear the pain of losing you.¡± Serenity looked away again, not wanting to meet his eyes. Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. She thought of ending the marriage because she was infuriated after learning that he was the heir of the rich York family, and that she had been deceived by him the entire time. After a few moments of silence, she looked at him again and said, ¡°Lend me your charger. My phone is out of battery.¡± Zachary stared at her intently. If her phone was out of battery, she would not be able to contact the outside world. He would be able to force her to stay by his side then. However, that was not a real solution to the problem. 825 Serenity met his stare. The hall was dead silent. Chapter 826 Chapter 826 Chapter 826 Brandt and the maids did not even dare to breathe. After a long time, Zachary raised his voice and ordered Brandt, ¡°Go and bring my phone charger for the missus.¡± ¡°Yes, sir.¡± Brandt quickly went to get the charger for Serenity. Was Zachary allowing her to charge her phone a sign that he would let her leave? In fact, Brandt also felt that Mr. Zachary should not keep Serenity under house arrest and that he should let her leave so that they could both calm down. However, he did not dare say such a thing. Serenity was too important to Zachary and he was afraid she would nevere back if she left. That was why he forced her to stay with him. However, that would only aggravate the couple¡¯s conflict. Brandt soon returned with the charger. He handed it to Zachary. When Zachary passed it to Serenity, he could not help but grab her hand when she took the charger, begging, ¡°Seren, don¡¯t bring up divorce again, okay?¡± Serenity drew her hand back and took the charger. She turned away and plugged in her phone. Zachary panicked when he did not get the assurance he wanted. He knew she was still thinking about leaving him. He could notprehend. Yes, he lied to her, but was his true identity not worthy of her? Why did she want a divorce after knowing the truth? An ordinary person would be jumping with joy if they found out their husband was a multi-billionaire. Zachary¡¯sck of understanding blinded him from seeing Serenity¡¯s anger stemming from his web of lies and his betrayal of her trust. When faced with Serenity¡¯s wrath, Zachary¡¯s approach made her feel incredibly ufortable. He exined himself, but he used force to knock her out. She wanted to leave, but he deliberately threw the keys and thedder out. His actions told her that she would not be able to take a single step out of this vi without his saying so. He was imprisoning her! To Serenity, his series of actions was like pouring gasoline on a burning house. There was no way she could calm down, much less forgive him. In any case, she would not be able to forgive him anytime soon. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary walked toward her. Serenity turned on her phone. When she saw him walking over, she put down the phone and walked away. She just did not want to get close to him.All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Her detachment and coldness were like a sharp knife fiercely stabbing Zachary¡¯s heart and his chest ached. Serenity entered the dining hall. She was hungry, so she got something to eat. She never thought of using a hunger strike to threaten Zachary into letting her go. He was not someone to be so easily threatened either. If she went on a hunger strike and fainted from starvation, he would just call the family doctor to give her nutritional fluids to keep her alive. In his words, he would not let her go. She would still be his in the afterlife. Since she knew he could not be pressurized, why should she bother to torture herself and starve? Brandt and the maids looked stunned when they saw Serenity enter the dining hall and started eating with a spoon without regard for others. ¡°Thank God the missus isn¡¯t going on a hunger strike,¡± Felicia murmured. Brandt raised his hand to wipe his sweat and whispered, ¡°Thank goodness.¡± As long as the missus did not threaten Mr. Zachary with a hunger strike, the conflict between the two would not intensify for the time being. Chapter 827 Chapter 827 Chapter 827 Zachary was also relieved. After a moment of silence, he walked over and sat across from Serenity. He used his fork to put food on her te, but she picked up her te to avoid the gesture, refusing his food. Zachary bitterly retracted his hand and ced the food his fork held on his own te instead. ¡°Seren, these are all your favorites. Have more,¡± he said tenderly. Serenity paid him no response, not even a nce. She simply ate by herself. ¡°I¡¯ll help you peel your favorite shrimps.¡± Zachary put on the disposable gloves to help her peel the shrimp, but Serenity simply took a shrimp and ate it whole, shell and all. Zachary was speechless. His wife did not even give him the chance to perform. Ding dong¡­ Ding dong¡­ The doorbell rang. It was already dark and chilly outside. Who would visit at this time of day? ¡°I¡¯ll get the door.¡± Brandt went to open the door. There was a car parked in front of the vi. However, Brandt did not recognize the vehicle, which meant the visitor was not an elder of the York family. The whole family united to lie to Serenity, so everyone was too embarrassed toe over now. They would first let Zachary fight by himself and discuss countermeasures if he was defeated. Zachary would be speechless if he knew what they were thinking. ¡°It¡¯s me, Brandt.¡± A person came out of the car. It was Mrs. Lane. Chapter 827 273 She waved at Brandt. When Brandt saw her, he quickly went over while pulling out the keys to the gate and asked, ¡°Why are you here, Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°I sent Liberty over. She¡¯s the missus¡¯s older sister.¡± Serenity¡¯s phone turned off automatically when the battery went t, causing Liberty to worry when she could not reach her sister. Liberty did not know what would happen to the stubborn couple, so she asked Mrs. Lane to send her over. It just so happened that Serenity¡¯s car, which was left at the entrance of York Corporation earlier in the day, still had the keys in the ignition. Liberty helped to drive it home, which was how she had a car to ¡°How is the missus, Brandt?¡± Brandt darted a look at the car behind Mrs. Lane and whispered, ¡°It¡¯s bad. Mr. Zachary is on the verge of breaking down. Do you think he can be well after the missus wrote him a divorce agreement? He went berserk. How would the missus have it any better than him?¡± Although Zachary would never raise his hand against Serenity, his forceful hugs and kisses angered her. Moreover, he had also knocked her unconscious! In short, the situation was chaotic! After the gate opened, Liberty drove in and parked at the small open parking lot under Brandt¡¯s guidance. She soon got out of the car. She did not bring Sonny with her. She asked Duncan to help her look after him. When she received Jasmine¡¯s phone call, she rushed out with Sonny in her arms and happened to stop Duncan¡¯s car, and Duncan had been apanying the mother and son since. Duncan was not as attentive as Josh, but he knew he had to put in a good word for his friend. When he apanied Liberty and Sonny, he constantly spoke up for Zachary in front of Liberty and said good things about him. Liberty never said anything bad about Zachary after the truth came to light. She told Duncan that she would support her sister no matter what decision she made. The choice was in Serenity¡¯s hands. ¡°Ms. Hunt.¡± Brandt greeted Liberty respectfully. ¡°Mr. Zachary and the missus are having dinner now. Pleasee in.¡± Liberty¡¯s nervous heart rxed slightly when she heard that the couple were eating. That was the Serenity she knew. Even if the sky fell down, she still had to fill her stomach. How would she have the strength to do other things if she did not eat enough? With Brandt and Mrs. Lane leading the way, Liberty walked into the lounge of the opulent vi. ¡°Liberty?¡±All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Chapter 828 Chapter 828 Chapter 828 Serenity was surprised to see that the person who came in was her sister. She immediately put down her te and walked toward Liberty. Zachary¡¯s knee¨Cjerk reaction was to grab her wrist. Serenity stared at him coldly. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary¡¯s heart ached with such a re from her. He felt like their rtionship as husband and wife had returned to the way it was on their first night. No, it was even colder than the beginning of their marriage. He finally let go of her hand and let her walk toward her sister. ¡°Seren.¡± Liberty jogged over. When the two sisters were face to face, Serenity plunged into her sister¡¯s arms and wailed her heart out. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Liberty hugged her sister tightly. ¡°Cry if you want to. I¡¯m here.¡± ¡°Liberty¡­¡± The floodgates to Serenity¡¯s suppressed emotions finally broke free when she fell into her sister¡¯s embrace. She cried pitifully for a long time. Zachary stood not far away, watching his petite wife cry. His heart ached, but he could offer herfort because he was the cause of her tears. Ten minutester, the Hunt sisters were seated side by side while Zachary sat by himself opposite them. ¡°Zachary, I came here to bring Seren home,¡± Liberty spoke bluntly. Zachary tensed his face and said in a low voice, ¡°This is Seren¡¯s home. We¡¯re husband and wife. Her home is where I live.¡± Liberty paraphrased, ¡°I¡¯m here to take Seren back to my home for a while.¡± ¡°Liberty, you and Sonny can move here instead.¡± 2/3 Liberty was speechless. ¡°What¡¯s that supposed to mean, Zachary?¡± Text property ? N?vel(D)ra/ma.Org. Liberty¡¯s expression turned cold. ¡°Are you forbidding Seren from leaving this vi? Do you know what you¡¯re doing? Do you think you can keep her by doing this? You¡¯ll only make the conflict worse.¡± ¡°Seren won¡¯te back if she leaves. I won¡¯t let her out of my sight!¡± Zachary was insistent. ¡°You-!¡± Anger got to Liberty. ¡°Save your breath, Liberty. He¡¯s someone who only does things he thinks are right. Everything has to go his way. He doesn¡¯t care what we think. He won¡¯t even give me the simplest things like trust and respect.¡± Instead of the anger and agitation from before, Serenity¡¯s face was indifferent. It was as if her heart had died. ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny?¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis is still at my ce. I asked him to take care of Sonny for me.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t Sonny terrified of Mr. Lewis?¡± ¡°He fell asleep before I came here.¡± Serenity was struck by realization. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Liberty. You should go back first. Sonny will be scared if he wakes sees Mr. Lewis instead of you.¡± up and Serenity asked her sister to leave. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Serenityforted her sister. ¡°Trust me, Liberty. I¡¯ll be fine.¡± Liberty looked at Zachary, but he was staring intently at her sister. It appeared he was afraid that she would fly away if he even blinked. When she looked at her sister¡¯s resigned expression, she sighed deeply and said to Zachary, ¡°Zachary, let¡¯s take a walk. We¡¯ll have a few words alone.¡± Liberty stood up and went out. Zachary followed silently. Chaube8 Outside the house, Liberty stopped and turned to look at this brother¨Cinw whom she once admired and always nagged for her sister to treat well. She could see that Zachary was physically and mentally exhausted by Serenity after confessing everything, but she did not sympathize with him. They were all adults. They had to be prepared to face the consequences of any decision they made. Chapter 829 Chapter 829 Chapter 829 ¡°I don¡¯t want to lose Seren, Liberty. I don¡¯t want to divorce.¡± Zachary spoke first. ¡°I know I deceived Seren by hiding my identity. Seren is different from the rest. She won¡¯t be particrly happy just because I¡¯m rich. I let her down, so she can get angry. She can scold me and hit me, but she can¡¯t leave me. She can¡¯t divorce me!¡± When Zachary finished, Liberty said to him, ¡°Do you think you¡¯ll never see Seren again if you let her walk out of this vi?¡± He stayed silent. He was afraid. He was truly terrified that he would never see Serenity again if she left the vi. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°Zachary, Serenity is my sister. We¡¯ve depended on each other for many years, and no one knows her better than I do. She¡¯s not the kind of person who retreats and runs away when things go wrong. No matter how angry and upset she gets, even if she asks you for a divorce, she won¡¯t run away. ¡°Running away isn¡¯t going to solve the problem. ¡°No matter how bad the situation is, you have to face reality. ¡°Let here back with me and stay at my ce for a few days to calm down. Even if you continue to force her to stay, once she makes a decision, the ending will be the same.¡± Zachary was silent. ¡°Zachary, I never thought you were overbearing and paranoid in the past, but this incident opened my eyes to your true nature. You have to think. Is Serenity willing to bear with your domineeringness? When you grasp a handful of sand in your hands, the tighter you grip, the faster the sand leaks. ¡°It¡¯s the same thing. The more domineering you are, the more Serenity will want to leave you. The little feelings you¡¯ve cultivated can¡¯t withstand the strain you¡¯re putting them through. If you exhaust the bit of affection that Seren has for you, then you¡¯ll truly have no way of fixing things anymore. ¡°Do you want a Serenity full of life, or do you want a soulless Serenity who¡¯s a walking corpse? Being overbearing and confining her isn¡¯t the solution.¡± Hunter 6.5 23 Liberty sighed again after she finished speaking. ¡°Think about what I said. Go back to the house and get some ice for your face. Seren went a little too hard. Half of your face is swollen.¡± The silent Zachary finally spoke up and said, ¡°I¡¯m fine as long as her hand doesn¡¯t hurt.¡± Liberty was speechless. ¡°Zachary, you need to realize what the real meaning of love is.¡± Then, she went back inside. Zachary did not follow her and simply stood in ce. His handsome face was taut like marble, cold and hard. His thin lips pursed into a tight line. His sister¨Cinw and Jasmine both persuaded him to let Serenity leave and take a breather. They said she was not the kind of person who would run off when things go wrong. However, he did not dare risk it! Serenity sent her sister off. When she saw Zachary standing there, she simply nced at him. Brandt and the rest, and even the hidden group of bodyguards showed their faces when Serenity came out. She knew it was because they were afraid she would leave with her sister. There was no way she could leave without Zachary¡¯s permission. Serenity did not try to go with her sister. She stood in the parking lot and watched Liberty get into the car. She listened to her sister¡¯s exhortations andforted thetter, telling her not to worry about her. Liberty knew Zachary would not harm Serenity, but¡­ ¡°Seren, I¡¯lle again tomorrow.¡± Liberty said to her sister while starting the car. Serenity hummed and waved at Liberty. She watched her sister drive away until it was out of sight. The night was gloomy, the cold wind was bitterly sharp, and the temperature plummeted. It was mirroring Serenity¡¯s mood at the moment. She turned around and walked back, but instead of entering the house, she wandered aimlessly around the courtyard while Zachary followed her from afar. There was nomunication between the couple the entire time. It was as if the space between them was frozen. It was cold and icy. 3.3 ¡°I want Mommy, I want Mommy¡­¡± At Liberty¡¯s ce, Sonny woke up and only saw Duncan with his mother nowhere in sight. His lips wobbled as he burst into tears. Duncan tried to carry him. Chapter 830 Chapter 830 Chapter 830 Sonny refused Duncan and slid out of bed himself, looking for his mother while crying. When he searched the house but still did not find Liberty, he cried even harder. ¡°Sonny, do you want some candy? Don¡¯t cry. Dunc will give you candy.¡± Duncan tried to coax him. ¡°I don¡¯t want candy. I want Mommy¡­¡± ¡°I¡¯ll bring you outside and buy you a windmill, okay?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want windmill. I want Mommy¡­¡± Sonny¡¯s cries grew louder. Duncan was unable to soothe Sonny no matter how he tried. He did not know how to coax children. In the end, he took out his cell phone, unlocked it, and handed it to Sonny. ¡°Don¡¯t cry, okay? Come here, I¡¯ll let you y with my phone. We can watch cartoons.¡± Sonny pped his phone away with one hand. ¡°I don¡¯t want phone.¡± Duncan scratched his head, feeling a headache. ¡°I thought children these days could be dealt with easily if they have a phone to y with.¡± Sonny did not want to y with his phone. However, there were many harmful effects of children ying with cell phones. Sonny was still too young, so it was indeed inappropriate for him to y with a phone. Just then, there was the sound of the door opening. Duncan hurriedly shoved the phone back into his pants pocket. He could not let Liberty see that he was trying to coax Sonny with his phone. He was setting a bad example for someone else¡¯s child. Liberty heard her son¡¯s cries as she was making her way up the stairs. She quickened her pace and hurriedly opened the door to enter the house. ¡°Mommy.¡± Hante 810 Sonny cried pitifully and ran toward Liberty when he saw his mother. Liberty bent down to pick up her son. When she saw the tears and snot running down his face, she carried him and brought tissues to help him wipe them away. ¡°Mommy is back, Sonny. Don¡¯t cry.¡± She pressed her son¡¯s head against her shoulder andforted him gently. ¡°Don¡¯t cry. Mommy just went out for some business. It¡¯s not because Mommy doesn¡¯t want you anymore. Duncan is here, so there¡¯s no need to be afraid.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Sonny thought, ¡®I¡¯m scared because Dunc is here.¡® Duncan said sheepishly, ¡°I couldn¡¯t coax him. He cried as soon as he woke up and saw me, then he tried looking for you. I tried everything, but I couldn¡¯t get him to stop crying.¡± Forgive him for having no experience with children. ¡°Sonny will cry if he wakes up and doesn¡¯t see me. It¡¯s a little better if Seren is around, but if she isn¡¯t, no one can coax him. Not even his father could.¡± Of course, that was also because Hank rarely spent time with his son. When he was at home asionally, he would just tease his son, make him cry, and then quickly slip away. Duncan stopped talking when Hank was suddenly mentioned. Liberty recalled that Jessica once bragged that she and Hank would go to the City Hall on Valentine¡¯s Day, which was today, to get the marriage formalities done. Liberty thought in her heart, ¡®Jessica did it on purpose. ¡®She chose to get married on Valentine¡¯s Day. ¡®She thought it would be a blow to me.¡® Liberty wanted tough. She did not understand why Jessica thought that she would still love Hank after the divorce. Hank was nothing but Sonny¡¯s father to her now. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Although Duncan could not coax Sonny, Liberty was still grateful that he had been with them the whole day. If only he did not harp about how tough Zachary had it, or what difficulties Zachary faced, Liberty would be even more grateful to him. Chart 831 Chapter 831 Chapter 831 Chapter 831 ¡°You don¡¯t need to thank me. I¡¯m mainly concerned about Zachary and his wife,¡± Duncan said frankly, seemingly worried that Liberty would misunderstand him. ¡°You went to visit them, so how are they now?¡± Duncan asked concernedly. Liberty sighed before she said, ¡°You and Zachary go a long way back, don¡¯t you? In fact, both of you are good friends and aren¡¯t simply rted in business. Mr. Lewis, even you side with Zachary to deceive us. ¡°You know Zachary¡¯s temper more than I do. He obstinately insists that things will be fine as long as he keeps Seren there. He won¡¯t even allow Seren to walk out of his vi. I noticed that he¡¯s quite weary, whereas Seren is slightly disheartened.¡± Duncan opened his mouth as he wanted to speak up for his good friend. However, he had no idea what to say. He had said good things about him countless times. He said so much that he felt thirsty and drank quite a lot of water at Liberty¡¯s ce. ¡°Zachary has toe around to it now, otherwise we won¡¯t be able to break the ice for them.¡± At the thought of Zachary¡¯s foul temper, Duncan could not help but sigh. ¡°Give Zachary a few days¡¯ time. He¡¯lle around. Forcefully keeping Serenity by his side will only worsen their rtionship.¡± Even Duncan who did not understand what love was could figure it out. Why was Zachary still clueless about it? After ncing at the time, Duncan said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll take my leave first. If you need my help in the future, you can dial my number.¡± ¡°Let me see you off, Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan did not reject Liberty. While carrying her son, Liberty saw Duncan off downstairs. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. ¡°Sonny, Dunc is leaving.¡± Duncan pinched Sonny¡¯s cute face gently. Before Sonny could pat away his hands, Duncan withdrew his hand. Under Sonny¡¯s re, Duncan chortled while getting into the car. The car drove away shortly. It was only when Duncan¡¯s car was out of sight did Liberty turn around and headed back with her son in her arms. ¡°Liberty.¡± A familiar scream rang out. Liberty knew that it was Hank without having to turn around. She stopped in her tracks. Then, she walked into the apartment building without looking back. ¡°Liberty.¡± Hank shouted her name once again. This time, his shout carried rage. Perhaps he was angered by Liberty¡¯s indifference toward him. It could also be that watching Liberty see Duncan off from afar made Hank angry. Hank ran over to block Liberty and her son¡¯s way before they could enter the building. Once he moved closer, Liberty could sense the strong stench of alcohol. She furrowed her brows. Carrying her son, she retreated and said in disdain, ¡°Hank, how much alcohol have you had? You stink. Stay away from me. Don¡¯t spread the smell to Sonny.¡± Hank glowered at Liberty. He must have had a lot of alcohol, considering that he attended a social function. Recently, he had not been living well, and his career had not been smooth sailing. After returning home, he was even nagged and reprimanded by his mother and sister. They grumbled about how Jessica was far from kind and understanding. It was Valentine¡¯s Day today. He sessfully got married to Jessica. Although he did not receive wishes from his family, he felt blessed that he was able to provide his true love with a legit status. He did not let Jessica down. Chapter 832 Chapter 832 Chapter 832 Nevertheless, before the couple could celebrate, Hank¡¯s boss had urged him to return to the office and continue working. After that, Hank caught sight of the interview regarding how Mr. Zachary pampered his wife. Serenity¡¯s husband, Zachary, turned out to be that Mr. Zachary York. Hank did suspect that before, but Zachary denied it. In the end, Zachary was really that Mr. Zachary York. When Jessica learned the news, she was madly jealous. She was jealous of how fortunate Serenity was to be able to rise from rags to riches. Previously, Jessica was also jealous when she found out that Mrs. Stone was Liberty and her sister¡¯s aunt. Jessica had been consumed by jealousy the entire afternoon, which caused Hank to feel unhappy. It was Serenity¡¯s business to marry Zachary. Was Jessica jealous because she looked down on Hank? ¡°Liberty!¡± Hank finally spoke and started bombarding questions at Liberty, ¡°Is that man Mr. Lewis? Mr. Lewis walked out of your house. What did both of you do? Is he trying to pursue you?¡± Liberty had thinned down a lottely. Although she was still not considered slim, she had be thinner than before her divorce. ¡°No wonder you lost so much weight so quickly. Do you think you can look like how you were before you got married so you can go from rags to riches? Liberty, we used to be married couples, and we loved each other. Let me kindly remind you not to bite off more than you can chew. Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t someone you¡¯re qualified to marry. ¡°It¡¯d be good enough if you could you remarry an old man who likes you. Do you think you can marry someone young and beautiful after getting a divorce like I could?¡± Liberty¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Hank, my rtionship with Mr. Lewis has nothing to do with you. Who do you think you are? Do you have the right to meddle in my affairs? ¡°You¡¯re indeed brilliant. After getting a divorce, you managed to marry a beautiful youngdy. You can go home and look for her. Why did you come over to validate (Chapter 837 7038 your existence? ¡°Could you have regretted it and realized that I¡¯m better than Jessica after you married her?¡± Hank¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Pah. I don¡¯t regret it at all. Jessica and I are extremely happy now! ¡°I¡¯m just reminding you out of the goodness of my heart so you won¡¯t be scammed out of romance and money. I was the one who gave you the money you¡¯re using now.¡± Liberty snorted. ¡°Thank you for reminding me. I deserve what you gave to me. Hank, it¡¯s okay if you¡¯re here to visit Sonny. But if you came over to criticize and lecture me, please leave. We¡¯re not rted at all!¡± Her criticism left Hank feeling shamefaced. He had no idea why he came over to look for Liberty all of a sudden either. At the sight of Duncaning out of Liberty¡¯s rented apartment and that Liberty saw Duncan off while carrying his son, Hank was furious. ¡°Has Serenity really married Zachary?¡± Hank suddenly changed the subject. Liberty smiled discreetly and asked him, ¡°So what if that¡¯s the case? What does it have to do with you?¡± Hank choked. After some time, he replied, ¡°Liberty, when we were divorced, you promised that as long as the division of property is done based on your request and that I let you have Sonny¡¯s custody, you won¡¯t take revenge against me after our divorce. ¡°I¡¯ve been down on my luck in my career. I suspect someone¡¯s turning against me¡­ Is that your doing?¡± Liberty said, ¡°I promised to never take revenge against you. I walk the talk. I¡¯m honest and open. Being down on your luck in your career is your issue. I never did anything behind your back.¡± Hank asked in disbelief, ¡°What about Serenity? She¡¯s married to Zachary York. She can have whatever she wants. It¡¯s all too easy for her to trap me. Is she the one trapping me?¡± ¡°I can¡¯t control what Serenity and Zachary do. I promised to never take revenge against you, and I did it.¡± Upon hearing Liberty¡¯s words, Hank pulled a long face. He gradually came toAll text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. understand that he had been tricked! Chapter 833 Chapter 833 Chapter 833 Liberty stared at her ex¨Chusband grimly and said, ¡°Serenity is too busy to meddles in your affairs. Now that your career hasn¡¯t been smooth, it shows that there are issues with your ability. Don¡¯t shift the me onto other people. You should identify your own problem.¡± Only now did her sister find out that she was married to Zachary How would her sister have the time to trick Hank? ¡°It must be either Serenity¡¯s or Zachary¡¯s doing. I¡¯m sure Serenity had Zachary trick me, which caused Jessica and me to be down on our luck at work ¡± Hank¡¯s eyes were filled with hatred. He was no fool. Just as he divorced Liberty, his career took a downward spiral Every day, his boss would tell him off. With all his reward this month deducted, he could only receive his basic sry. He could no longer stay in Waltharn Electronics Currently, everyone in thepany was looking forward to his leaving If no one had tricked him, his life would not have gone downhill all of a sudden, considering that he was flourishing back then. Perhaps it was not Serenity¡¯s doing. This was because she just found out that Zachary was ¡°the¡± Zachary York. However, Hank believed Zachary must have done something Zachary tricked him with the intention of standing up for Liberty Did Liberty have a hunch or know something? Was that why she herself promised to never take revenge against him? Hank med himself for not analyzing the loopholes when he got the divorce. ¡°Since you¡¯re under the impression that Zachary tricked you, you should confront him. Hank, do you think you¡¯re a big shot? What is Zachary¡¯s identity? How would he have the time to pay attention to someone insignificant like you? ¡°If he¡¯d put effort into tricking you, that would have been a waste of time. In fact, there are issues with your ability. You¡¯re always busy publicly disying your affection for Jessica, and that¡¯s why there¡¯s trouble with your work. Haha, that¡¯s not surprising.¡± Hank scoffed. ¡°If Zachary wants to trick me, he can just do it with one call. He won¡¯t need to dirty his hands.¡± ¡°Whatever. If you have the guts, go and confront Zachary. I¡¯m not Zachary, and I know nothing. Anyhow, I did what I promised. You can¡¯t put the me on me.¡± With that, Liberty carried her son and walked past Hank before heading toward the building. Hank turned around and red ferociously at Liberty¡¯s back. He held back his urge to attack her. Given that Liberty was carrying Sonny, Hank could not attack her in front of his son. If he did that¡­ he could not bear the consequences. Casting aside how Serenity and her husband would take revenge against him, he could not even handle Liberty¡¯s cruelty. The cold breeze blew, causing Hank to sober up significantly. He appeared to be dazed, wondering why he hade over to look for Liberty. Ring, ring, ring¡­. His phone rang. He took out his phone to see the iing call. It was from Jessica. ¡°Hey, Jessica. I¡¯m on my way home.¡± When Hank attended a social function earlier, he did not bring Jessica along. Heforted her that today was the day they got married, so he did not want her to feel exhausted. He managed to persuade Jessica to return home after work. ¡°Be careful while driving on the road. I¡¯ll wait for you at home.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Hank walked toward his car. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. As soon as he got into the car, he recalled that when he was in a rtionship with Liberty, Liberty would remind him not to drive after having alcohol as drunk driving could harm other people as well as himself. Chapter 834 Chapter 834 Chapter 834 Jessica was aware that Hank attended a social function, so he must have drunk a lot of alcohol. She called to remind him to drive carefully on the road, but she did not remind him not to drive after he had alcohol. Hank grew upset whenparing Jessica with Liberty. All he could do was delude himself. ¡®Jessica is still young, so she doesn¡¯t know how to be concerned about others. She¡¯ll gradually get better at this.¡® Hank fixed his eyes on Liberty¡¯s rented apartment for a long time before he drove away. He even deliberately went to a florist¡¯s shop to buy a bouquet of flowers and brought it home. He returned to his rented apartment and opened the door, only to see his mother seated on the couch with a furious look. His father and Jessica were nowhere to be seen in the living room. Chelsea¡¯s family had returned to their hometown after the kids¡® school reopened. However, both Chelsea and his brother¨Cinw lost their jobs. They requested Hank to look for jobs for them. At this point, Hank could not even fend for himself, much less help them find jobs. His sister would grumble that he had be unlucky ever since he got together with Jessica. She imed that Jessica was a troublemaker; whoever was with her would be unlucky. Chelsea then began to speak well of Liberty. Although Liberty was plump and ugly, she was able to bring good luck to her husband. Ever since she married Hank, his career thrived, and he had been doing well. This exined why he could umte so much wealth. When Chelsea wasining to him, her voice was loud. She was not at all worried that Jessica could overhear it. Of course, Jessica was exasperated. After having a row with Hank¡¯s sister, Jessica kicked his sister¡¯s family out. If Chelsea insisted on staying, Jessica would want her to pay for rent and food. Jessica wanted Chelsea¡¯s family to go Dutch, which angered thetter. Hank recalled the night when Chelsea and Jessica had a bitter row. He tried his level best to coax his sister and gave her a sum of money. Only then did she bring her husband and children back to her hometown. Also, the kids needed to go to school. He had to coax Jessica and continued to discuss the issue of family support. Chapter 834 The Yateses refused to reduce the amount they were asking for living expenses. They imed that if they did not receive the amount requested, they would not allow Hank and Jessica to get married. As Jessica loved Hank, she secretly married him today. At this thought, Hank¡¯s expression became much gentler. After all, Jessica loved him and was not eyeing his money. Despite not having received living expenses for her family, she was willing to marry him. ¡°Mom.¡± Hank walked up to his mother with the bouquet of flowers he bought in his arms. ¡°Why are you angry? Where¡¯s Jessica?¡± When Olivia saw her son returning with a bouquet of flowers in his arms, she knew it was for Jessica even without asking him. Her face darkened. She stood up abruptly and snatched the bouquet. She then threw it onto the floor and lifted her leg to stomp on it. ¡°Mom, Mom, I paid for the flowers.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Hank promptly tried to save the flowers, but it was toote. The flowers withered after his mother stomped on them. ¡°Hank, you take pity on the flowers instead of me, huh? I haven¡¯t even eaten. After your wife came back, she has been ying with her phone in the room. I¡¯ve asked her a few times to cook, but she¡¯s still inside. Is she nning to starve me?¡± Hank nced at the time and said with a frown, ¡°Mom, don¡¯t you know how to cook? When you were in Chelsea¡¯s house, you helped her family to prepare their meals every day. You¡¯re not that old. You¡¯re only in your fifties now. Those people in our hometown are still farming despite being in theirte fifties. ¡°Jessica has eaten in the office beforeing home.¡± His words made Olivia¡­ It felt that her son had forgotten about her once he married his wife. Anyhow, Liberty was better. When Liberty was Olivia¡¯s daughter¨Cinw, she would buy many dishes that Olivia loved every time she came over. Liberty would cook, and Olivia did not need to do anything. After Liberty was done preparing the dishes, she would ask Olivia to eat. When Olivia was in a bad mood, she would be picky about the dishes and harp on how awful Liberty¡¯s cooking was. Now, Jessica would eat in the office before returning home. Did she not know that she should cook for her mother¨Cinw? Chapter 835 Chapter 835 Chapter 835 ¡°Hank, you¡¯ve forgotten about me after marrying your wife, huh? This isn¡¯t how you behaved in the past. You must be bewitched by that mistress so much that you want to abandon me. What a tough life I have. Why did I give birth to such a son who married a mistress? ¡°Liberty, I regret it. I¡¯ve learned from my mistakes. You¡¯re still better. You could cook and do household chores. You also treated me well and brought good luck to your husband. When you were around, Hank was doing well in his career. He was lucky and wealthy. Our family was living in happiness. ¡°Once you left, Hank started to be down on his luck in his career. His ie has reduced greatly. Even Chelsea and her husband have lost their jobs. As for me, I¡¯ve been bullied every day¡­ I regret it. I regret it so much!¡± While bawling, Olivia criticized her son for being unfilial. She recalled how her family was living well when Liberty was around. However, tears did not flow out of her eyes. She was merely wailing. Indeed, Olivia regretted it, and so did Chelsea. Making such aparison only led to despair. In the past, Chelsea found Liberty so useless that she was eager to see Hank and Liberty split. Now, Hank got together with Jessica, who was not to be trifled with lightly. When Chelsea provoked Jessica, thetter even counterattacked her fiercely. When Olivia sided with Chelsea, Jessica told Olivia to live with Chelsea and have her daughter take care of her in the future. This was because Olivia favored Chelsea and made things difficult for Jessica. With herpetence, Olivia would side with her daughter without being bothered. about her son and daughter¨Cinw. She even gave her daughter the money that she got from her son. When she was unable to move around, she would want her son and daughter¨Cinw to look after her. Olivia could dream on! Jessica mentioned that if her parents¨Cinw continued to be irrational and side with their daughter, she would be unfilial toward them. She would not be bothered about how Hank was going to treat his parents. Anyhow, she was not her parents¨Cinw¡¯s biological chiid. Her parents¨Cinw had never raised her, so she was under no obligation to serve them. Chapter 135 2/3 This made Mr. and Mrs. Brown¡¯s blood boil. ¡°Mom, stop bawling. I¡¯ve been down on my luck in my career. I just want silence when I return home. You keep kicking up a fuss every day. What¡¯s the point of regretting it? Liberty and I are already divorced. I married Jessica today, and she¡¯ll be your daughter¨Cinw from now on.¡± Hank was trying to stop his mother from bawling. He said huffily, ¡°When Liberty was around, you and Chelsea would always nag me about how useless Liberty was. You said Liberty spent money indiscriminately without knowing how to make money, and that she stayed at home and only took care of the kid every day without doing anything much. ¡°You called Liberty a spendthrift and imed she wanted to live with her sister. The two of them had been stuck together for over ten years. Before Liberty got married, she had never requested anything from our family. The only request she made was to have Serenity live with us until Serenity got married. ¡°You and Chelsesa had been badmouthing Liberty, saying that an adult like her could have rented a house outside since she had ie. She insisted on staying with us, and you believed she wanted to sponge off us. At that time, Liberty would pay you. two thousand dors of living allowance every month, whereas Chelsea stayed here for about two months, yet she didn¡¯t pay a penny. ¡°When Liberty¡¯s parents passed away, how old was Serenity? She was about 10 years old. What was wrong with being a little reliant on her sister? The two of them who had always been stuck together couldn¡¯t bear to part with each other. How is that considered sponging off us? That was what we promised Liberty before our marriage. ¡°Do you think Serenity was happy to stay in our house and be at our mercy? She was worried about her sister and wanted to reduce Liberty¡¯s burden. She helped Liberty with some household chores so her sister won¡¯t be too tired. ¡°Mom, you have yourself to me. If you and Chelsea hadn¡¯tined about Liberty and her sister that way, Liberty and I wouldn¡¯t have rowed so often, which ruined our rtionship. That was why I fell in love with someone else. ¡°You regret it now, huh? You only regret it after learning that Serenity has married Zachary and that Liberty and Serenity¡¯s aunt is Mrs. Stone. Even if you regret it, you have to endure the guilt. This is because you yed a huge role in Liberty and my divorce. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Anyway, Jessica has be your daughter¨Cinw. If you want to have your son and daughter¨Cin¨C law care for you when you¡¯re old, you should treat Jessica well. 3:3 Chan 835 She¡¯s not your biological child, so she doesn¡¯t owe you anything. If you don¡¯t treat her well first, why should you expect her to do the same to you?¡± Olivia was speechless. Chapter 836 Chapter 836 Chapter 836 ¡°Mom, you¡¯d better not go to Liberty and pour out your feelings. Don¡¯t wash our dirty linen in public. You¡¯re already so old, yet you¡¯re under the impression that Liberty will take pity on you if you vent to her. All she¡¯ll do is gloat over it.¡± Hank expressed all his dissatisfaction in one go. His words made Olivia grimace, and she was at a loss for words. ¡°Mom, think about it.¡± With that, Hank turned around and walked away. ¡°Where are you going?¡± Seeing that her son was about to go out, Olivia asked him. ¡°You stomped on the flowers that I nned to give to my wife. I¡¯m going out to buy a new bouquet of flowers.¡± Olivia was speechless. Hank left without looking back. He went out to buy Jessica another bouquet of flowers. When he returned, he saw his mother weeping on the couch. Distressed, he ignored his mother. He entered his room with the new bouquet of flowers. Jessica was watching a video using her phone on the bed. She would chortle from time to time.All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. At the sight of the flowers in his arms, Jessica put down her phone. She jumped off the bed and walked toward Hank barefoot. ¡°Darling, you¡¯re back.¡± When Hank told Olivia off in the living room just now, Jessica actually heard everything from her room. Jessica was pleased that her husband took her side. ¡°Darling, this bouquet of flowers is for you. Today is our wedding day.¡± He even took out a Tiffany box and opened it. Then, he lifted a gold ring. ¡°This is for you.¡± After Jessica received the flowers, she stretched out her hand to have Hank put on 836 2.2 the gold ring for her. She said coquettishly, ¡°We need to renovate our wedding room, so let¡¯s be frugal. As for my parents¡­ we¡¯ll pay for our wedding and family support. A simple one will do.¡± If Hank paid her parents family support worth 60,000 dors, Jessica would not get anything. It would only benefit her two brothers. Why should they be eligible for it? Jessica¡¯s mindset changed swiftly. Before she married Hank, she persuaded Hank to promise her parents the amount they requested. Now that she was married to Hank, she felt that she deserved everything that belonged to him. She could not bear to give so much money to her parents to help her brothers. Anyhow, she was already married to Hank. There was no way her parents could threaten her. Jessica refused to help her brothers. Now that she had been married off, she wanted to live a good life first. If she was wealthy enough, she would asionally lend a hand to her family if they were in trouble. Having said that, it would be impossible for her to use up all her money here just to help her family out. Chapter 837 Chapter 837 Chapter 837 Upon hearing Jessica¡¯s words, Hank hugged her. He lowered his head and kissed her on the face. ¡°Darling, thank you for being considerate.¡± ¡°We¡¯re a married couple. I just want us to live much better than you and Liberty did.¡± At the mention of Liberty, Hank clearly stiffened. Nevertheless, he did not say anything. He soon carried Jessica to bed. Every moment of the wedding night was precious indeed. On the other hand, Serenity strolled outside the hilltop vi. Only when her legs were tired did she return to the house. Zachary silently followed behind her. Every time he wanted to speak to her, she would say, ¡°You liar, stay away from me. I don¡¯t want to talk to you now.¡± This caused Zachary to be submissive. All he could do was silently follow behind her. By the time Serenity returned to the house, her phone was already fully charged. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. She unplugged the charger and picked up her phone, only to see many iing missed calls and WhatsApp messages. There were also text messages. ¡°You, liar, I¡¯ve ced the charger here. Take it yourself,¡± Serenity remarked coldly. After leaving the charger on the coffee table, she headed upstairs with her phone. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary called her name with a deep voice. When he trailed his voice, it carried a trace of pity. Serenity turned a deaf ear to it and went upstairs straight away. Zachary hurriedly tagged along. Of course, Serenity would not stay in their room. She entered the guest room instead and locked the door from inside. As a result, Zachary was unable to unlock the door even with a spare key. Zachary was left outside the room. He knocked on the door and said in a soft tone,¡± Seren, are you still angry? Tell me what I should do so you¡¯ll cool down and talk to me.¡± He could not stand the indifference and the sense of alienation from her. He could 212 not stand how she kept calling him a liar. Even so, he could not stand it when she fought back in agitation either. Zachary really had no idea what he should do. He asked Josh for help. Josh told him to calm down and would let him know how to solve it. Why should Zachary calm down? Serenity ignored him. After nting herself on the couch in the room, she switched on her phone and checked the missed calls. Not only were the calls from Jasmine but also from the Yorks. She then looked at the WhatsApp messages. Some were sent by her sister and some by Jasmine. There were many other messages as well. She knew those messages were from Zachary¡¯s family who tried to speak up for him. Serenity thought in frustration, ¡®What else could they say?¡® His family deceived her. Chapter 838 Chapter 838 Chapter 838 Serenity was not just mad at Zachary but also the Yorks. Serenity replied to her sister¡¯s message first before calling Jasmine. ¡°Serenity.¡± Jasmine answered her call shortly. ¡°Serenity, how are you now? Your phone had been turned off during the day. I called you numerous times when your phone was off. When I could finally get through at night, you didn¡¯t pick up my call.¡± Serenity pretended to be fine in front of her good friend and said, ¡°My phone ran out of battery, so it automatically turned off. That¡¯s why you couldn¡¯t get through. Later, I borrowed the liar¡¯s charger to have my phone fully charged.¡± Liar¡­ Jasmine could sense the fury in her words. She knew Serenity was still mad. It was hard for Serenity to cool down, considering that she was deceived by the person whom she shared her bed with. ¡°So it turned out that your phone ran out of battery. You gave me a fright. Are you okay?¡± Serenity fell quiet for some time before she forced augh and said, ¡°It¡¯d be a lie to say that I¡¯m okay. I¡¯m not. I¡¯m not okay at all. Jasmine, I¡¯ve lost my freedom. That b* stard forbids me to step out of the vi. When my sister came to visit me, he didn¡¯t allow her to bring me back.¡±Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine said, ¡°His tactic is a bit too much. He called Josh, and Josh said he hit you and knocked you unconscious.¡± At the mention of this matter, Serenity was boiling with anger. Feeling aggrieved, she said, ¡°It was his fault. I¡¯m angry. Why can¡¯t I be angry? When I wanted to cool down, he hit me and made me faint. He almost broke the back of my neck. ¡°It was Grandma May¡¯s fault that I ended up marrying such a man. Grandma May lied to me from the very beginning. If she had disclosed her identity back then, I¡¯d rather hire someone to put on an act with me to deceive my sister than marry Zachary. ¡°Everyone in his family is a liar. They lied to me. ¡°I won¡¯t forgive him. I won¡¯t forgive him anytime soon! There¡¯s a huge gap in¡­ our marriage. I want to get a divorce. I¡¯ve even gotten the divorce agreement ready. He wouldn¡¯t be taken advantage of at all. He rejected it and even tore the divorce 273 agreement I¡¯d prepared.¡± Serenity drafted the divorce agreement because she was furious at being deceived. Another reason was that she subconsciously thought she was not qualified to be with Zachary. Regardless of whether it was Jasmine or Elisa, both of them always said that married couples should be well¨Cmatched. It would be easier to mingle around if two people were of the same status and from the same industry. When two people were of different statuses, they would have different perspectives and lifestyles. The story of Cindere and Prince Charming was merely a fairytale. What was more, Cindere¡¯s family was not badly off. She came from a noble background, but the only unfortunate thing was that her stepmother abused her. ¡°Serenity, can you try tomunicate with him properly? Isn¡¯t forbidding you to step out of the house equivalent to cing you under house arrest? ¡°I guess Mr. Zachary¡­¡± ¡°Call him the liar!¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Okay. He¡¯s the liar. The liar who loves you so much and is afraid of losing you, which exins his extreme behavior. Have a talk with him and see if you can persuade him to set you free.¡± Indeed, the liar had an extremely low EQ. When Serenity flew into a rage, Zachary added fuel to the fire by forcefully keeping her by his side. This would only make her even more upset and mad at him. However, at the thought that Zachary could go as far as hitting Serenity and she fainted, Jasmine felt that it was normal for him to imprison Serenity in the vi. Even Josh was put out by Zachary¡¯s horrible behavior and refused to pick up his calls. ¡°He¡¯s very domineering and stubborn. At this moment, I don¡¯t want to talk to him, much lessmunicate with him. No one canmunicate with him. He¡¯ll regret forbidding me to go out. Jasmine, buy me a truck of chickens and ducks and send them over tomorrow. Also, send me a few huskies and two litters of kittens. It¡¯s better to get mini kittens so they¡¯ll meow noisily. ¡°Since he forbids me to leave, I¡¯ll cause amotion in his vi. He¡¯s quite a clean freak. Let¡¯s see if he can tolerate the chicken poop all over his house when he gets home every day.¡± 33 Jasmine was at a loss for words. Serenity¡¯s mindset was really different. Jasmine said readily, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll go to a rural chicken farm tomorrow and get you a truck of chickens and ducks. Send me your location. Do you want cows and pigs as well? As for the chickens, do you want big or small ones?¡± Chapter 839 Chapter 839 Chapter 839 ¡°To buy cows and pigs, you need to go all the way to the countryside, right? That¡¯s too far. You don¡¯t need to. I want big-sized chickens and ducks. Buy more roosters that can already crow. With the roosters crowing at dawn every day, I¡¯m sure it¡¯ll annoy him.¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°Alright. Leave it to me. I¡¯ll handle it well.¡± It was not known whether Zachary wouldpromise after Serenity turned his vi into a zoo. ¡°But Seren, will Mr. Zachary, I mean, the liarpromise? What¡¯s more, he must have other vis too. Will he bring you to another vi?¡± Serenity paused for a moment before she responded, ¡°I have no idea how he¡¯ll react either. Anyhow, since he¡¯s making things difficult for me, I¡¯ll cause him trouble as well.¡± ¡°It appears that the two of you are now enemies.¡± Glum, Serenity did not say anything. ¡°I¡¯ve told Josh to advise Mr. Zachary, yet Josh told me to advise you. He said Mr. Zachary had his reasons for deceiving you. Given that he¡¯s the eldest grandson of the wealthy Yorks, he¡¯s worried that people eye his money. That¡¯s why he concealed his identity to assess your character.¡± Jasmine continued, ¡°I rejected him. Considering that he¡¯s Mr. Zachary¡¯s best friend, he¡¯ll certainly take his side and speak up for him. I¡¯m your best friend, so I must side with you. Seren, I¡¯m with you regardless of your decision.¡± Serenity kept quiet for a moment before she said, ¡°It¡¯s understandable that he concealed his identity at first, but our rtionship as a married couple developedter on. We¡¯re married, yet he continued to lie to me. This was what made my blood boil. I even doubt his feelings for me. Who knows if he¡¯s actually in love with me? ¡°None of his words have been sincere. He¡¯s always lying. Besides, regarding his situation with Elisa, how will Elisa perceive me after she finds out that I¡¯m married to Zachary?¡± Jasmine said, ¡°This isn¡¯t your fault. You didn¡¯t know his identity either. Elisa had always called him Mr. York, but she had never mentioned ¡®Zachary¡¯ York. Who knew the Mr. York she was infatuated with would be the same one you married?¡± She sighed. ¡°When Elisa returns and finds out everything¡­ I can¡¯t imagine her Chapter 639 212 reaction. Seren, luckily you and Elisa are now cousins. With this rtionship, it might be a little better.¡± What Serenity wanted to say was that it was possible for biological brothers to fall out with each other, much less cousins. However, Jasmine believed Elisa would not fall out with Serenity because of this issue. After all, Serenity was the one being deceived. ¡°Right now, I am in no mood to consider that. What I¡¯m thinking is when I can leave this ce.¡± Jasmine greatly sympathized with her best friend. Jasmine would not agree with Zachary¡¯s manner of dealing with his rtionship crisis. Even Josh felt that it was incorrect. Nevertheless, Zachary would not listen to anyone¡¯s advice. He strongly believed that Serenity would always be his wife and stay with him as long as he kept her by his side. He had the audacity to lie to Serenity for such a long time, yet he was too timid to bear the consequences after telling the truth. At that moment, Jasmine¡¯s image of the man who was said to be most excellent in Wiltspoon had been ruined. It turned out that everyone had their shorings no matter how excellent they were. Knock, knock. ¡°Seren, you don¡¯t have any changing clothes in your room, so I¡¯ve sent them over. Can you open the door and take them? Alternatively, you can open the door and let me bring the clothes to you.¡± Zachary¡¯s ttering voice resounded from outside. Serenity said to her best friend, ¡°Jas, we¡¯ll talk again soon. That liar keeps knocking on the door. I¡¯m going to take a look.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Alright.¡± After Serenity ended the call, she rose to her feet from the couch with an icy expression. Then, she walked toward the door and opened it. Chapter 840 Chapter 840 Chapter 840 ¡°Honey.¡± Once the door was opened, Serenity looked at Zachary¡¯s handsome face. He instantly wore a ttering smile. However, on other typical days, he would pull a long face, showing a stern expression. He would hardly smile. At that moment, Serenity felt that the smile was fake. ¡°Honey, I¡¯ve brought over your changing clothes.¡± Zachary handed her two sets of clothes. One set was pajamas, whereas the other was her outfit for tomorrow. ¡°Let me bring them inside for you, okay?¡± Serenity forbade him to enter the room. After taking her clothes, she retreated and mmed the door shut. Then, she locked the door from the inside once again. Zachary was speechless. He did not walk away and stood at the door instead. At the same time, he was wondering when Seren would open the door and look for him. Sure enough, he heard the sound of the door being unlocked in two minutes. He immediately straightened his body and wore a smile on his handsome face. The moment Serenity pulled open the door, he grinned and said gently, ¡°Honey, what else do you need? Just let me know. I¡¯ll be serving you tonight.¡± ¡°I need two more shirts and other daily necessities. Bring them to me.¡± Zachary quickly answered, ¡°Alright. Wait a moment. I¡¯ll get them for you right away.¡± After that, he turned around and scurried away. After some time, he came back to Serenity and handed a bag of daily necessities to her. ¡°Honey, take a look and let me know what else you need. Just tell me and I¡¯ll get it for you right away.¡± Serenity casually checked the bag and realized that all the daily necessities were inside. Once again, she retreated and was ready to close the door. ¡°Honey.¡± Zachary stepped astride the room and blocked the door with his body so that apter 840 Serenity would not close it. He rubbed his hands and said shamefacedly, ¡°Honey, although the New Year has passed and it¡¯s spring now, a cold front is moving in from the south. The air temperature has decreased, and it¡¯s particrly cold. There¡¯s no heater in the guest room. If you sleep alone, you¡¯re sure to feel cold, ¡°I have another great function, which is to offer you warmth. I promise I won¡¯t take advantage of you. I¡¯m just here to warm you.¡± Serenity was exasperated. That man could not be more shameless. ¡°Honey, let me go inside and be your warmer. Look, the room is big. Even if you close the windows, you¡¯ll feel cold. This is when I can serve as a warmer.¡± ¡°No need!¡± Serenity ordered, ¡°Withdraw your leg, or I¡¯ll close the door and you¡¯ll end up with a crushed leg. I can then look down on you openly!¡± ¡°Honey.¡± ¡°Stop calling me Honey. Who¡¯s your Honey? I¡¯m merely a materialistic girl who eyes your wealth and status. I wouldn¡¯t have married you if you were poor and ugly.¡± Heartbroken, Zachary said, ¡°Seren, it was my fault. I shouldn¡¯t have hidden the truth from you for such a long time. Don¡¯t criticize yourself that way. You¡¯re the best woman in the world. You¡¯re unique to me¡­¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°You liar, doesn¡¯t your face hurt or get swollen? You¡¯ve always been lying and getting a p in the face. Who would trust you? Let me tell you that I¡¯m not going to trust anything you say from now on!¡± Chapter 841 Chapter 841 Chapter 841 This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Zachary¡¯s handsome face turned grim. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m not lying at all. Some of my words are sincere. I love you, and this is definitely true.¡± ¡°Yes. You love me. You love lying to me, right? Are you going to get out? If you¡¯re not, I¡¯ll crush your leg!¡± After speaking frostily, Serenity forcefully shut the door. Zachary dared not feign pity and obediently withdrew his leg. Then, he watched Serenity shut the door and lock it. Only after some time did Zachary return to his room. After taking a bath, he moved a single¨Cseater couch and ced it outside Serenity¡¯s room. Then, he brought over a nket. He sat on the couch with the nket wrapping him and slept at the door to block her way. He was worried Serenity would sneak out of the room and climb the wall to leave the house after he fell asleep. In fact, Serenity did have such an idea. In the dead of night, she secretly walked to the door and opened the door gently. She pulled the door slightly open, only to see Zachary sleeping on the couch with a nket on him. Shocked, she immediately shut the door. ¡°Liar! That big fat liar is actually blocking my way at the door.¡± Serenity kept cussing at Zachary internally. Since there was no hope of sneaking out, she had no choice but to continue sleeping. After falling asleep, Serenity had a nightmare, probably because she was in a foul mood. She dreamed that she had a row with Zachary. When she woke up the next day, she was not sure whether she was awake or still in her dream. Her face was wet. When she lifted her hand to touch her face, her palm was filled with tears. In her dream, she had a row with Zachary and wept the whole night. Lying on the bed, she looked at the ceiling nkly. Zachary blocked her way at the door the entire night. After he woke up, he knocked on the door, yet Serenity ignored him. He stood at the door for a long time before shifting the couch back to the room. Chapter 841 212 Ring, ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. Once he took a glimpse of the notification, he could not wait to pick up the call.¡± Josh, have you thought of a solution for me? Hurry up and tell me what I should do to make Seren forgive me and stop giving me the silent treatment.¡± Josh replied, ¡°Is it toote to end the call now?¡± Zachary was lost for words. ¡°Zachary, how¡¯s your situation with your wife? I think Jasmine¡¯s idea is good. They¡¯ve been friends for over ten years. They must¡¯ve known each other well. Why don¡¯t you let her stay in her sister¡¯s house for a couple of days to cool down? ¡°What you should do isn¡¯t imprison her. Instead, you should learn to respect, trust, and understand her. Please get rid of your damn domineering attitude, or there¡¯s no chance for you to make up with her.¡± He wanted Zachary to get rid of his domineering, stubborn attitude and learn how to truly love a woman, respect her, trust her, and understand her. Otherwise, the rtionship between the couple would worsen. ¡°Serenity is a very independent woman. She dislikes your behavior. It¡¯s impossible that she¡¯ll tolerate you like how others do. Zachary, Serenity isn¡¯t someone you should change. You should change yourself.¡± Zachary pulled a long face without uttering a word. ¡°Oh. I almost forgot to get down to business. I¡¯m calling you to ask whether you¡¯reing to the office today. It¡¯s already past eight. Give me a definite answer so I can answer Clive. He has been waiting for you in the VIP room. ¡°He said if you¡¯reing to the office, he¡¯ll continue to wait for you. If you¡¯re not, he¡¯ll immediately go look for you at your house.¡± After hearing that, Zachary¡¯s face turned grave and icy. He had neglected the fact that Clive was Serenity¡¯s cousin. ¡°Let him know I¡¯ll be in the office in a while.¡± Chapter 842 Chapter 842 Chapter 842 It was impossible Zachary would allow Clive toe over. Clive was unaware that Zachary had restricted Serenity¡¯s freedom. Serenity did not think about asking for Clive¡¯s help either. If Clive came over to look for Zachary, he was bound to learn it. Zachary had no regard for other people. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. However, he must not hold Clive and his mother with contempt. Furthermore, Mrs. Stone was Serenity¡¯s aunt and elder. She had the right to stand up for Serenity. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll let Clive know.¡± With that, Josh promptly ended the call. If he had ended it anyter, Zachary might ask him for a solution again. Zachary rejected his suggestions, so what could he do? Zachary soon left the vi. He told Brandt to remind Serenity to have her breakfast. He had half the group of security guards to watch the vi in case Serenity escaped when he was away. Forty minutester at the CEO¡¯s office in York Corporation. Zachary and Clive entered the office practically one after another. Zachary walked directly to his desk and sat on the ck chair. Clive, who was following behind, nted himself in the seat next to him abrasively. Mr. Chaplin poured a ss of warm water for each of them. Then, he acted like an invisible person and left. The two CEOs had nasty expressions on their faces. Even Josh did not dare involve himself in the situation, much less Mr. Chaplin. ¡°Zachary, did you listen to what I said? Elisa hasn¡¯tpletely gotten over you, yet you were already frank with Serenity. Have you ever thought about Elisa¡¯s feelings? Elisa ising back tomorrow. If she knows that her best friend is her love rival who snatches her beloved man, she¡¯ll get mad.¡± Clive was particrly angry. Chapter 842 2/2 He spoke quite brutally. Ever since Zachary¡¯s identity was exposed, Serenity¡¯s reaction had not been reported. Clive thought of contacting Serenity, but she had turned off her phone. He was under the false impression that Serenity did so as she wanted to avoid being disturbed by the media. He was also under the false impression that she was thrilled to find out that Zachary was ¡®the¡® Zachary York. After all, Zachary was wealthy and had high social standing. Which woman would hate to marry the young and handsome Zachary? Being Zachary¡¯s wife meant that one could enjoy unlimited wealth. Therefore, Clive dragged Serenity into the subject while criticizing Zachary. He felt that his cousin was only concerned about love and neglected Elisa¡¯s feelings. What was worse, she even added insult to injury. Clive took pity on his sister the most. Zachary stared at Clive and said gravely, ¡°My marriage with Seren is our affair. It has nothing to do with your sister. I guess it¡¯s my choice to be frank whenever I want. Why do I need to care about your feelings? ¡°If I care about Elisa¡¯s feelings, who¡¯s going to care about mine? I¡¯ve never promised Elisa anything or epted her love. I don¡¯t owe her, so why should I care about her feelings? If she can¡¯t get over me at all, does it mean that I can never be frank with Seren? ¡°Clive, I know you¡¯re Seren¡¯s cousin, and both of you aren¡¯t close. It¡¯s understandable that you favor your sister. Having said that, don¡¯t hurt your cousin. ¡°She knows nothing. I didn¡¯t let her know before I agreed to have the interview. She hasn¡¯t the slightest idea what¡¯s happening. What gives you the right to criticize her?¡± Clive¡¯s lips parted. He was unable to refute Zachary¡¯s ims. Chapter 843 Chapter 843 Chapter 843 After a while, Clive asked, ¡°How did Serenity react after she learned of your identity? Her phone has been off, so I can¡¯t get through.¡± Zachary said sarcastically, ¡°You¡¯re not close with your cousin because you haven¡¯t spent much time bonding with her, huh? I could already get through Seren¡¯s phonest night. You imed that her phone had been off, but how many times have you tried to call her? ¡°Why should I tell you her reaction? That¡¯s our business. It has nothing to do with you.¡± Even though Mrs. Stone was Serenity¡¯s aunt, they had not spent much time bonding with each other. Their rtionship was new. To him, only his sister¨Cinw had the right to tell him off. The Stones had no right to do so. Clive was at a loss for words. After being quiet for a while, Clive continued, ¡°Zachary, sorry to bother you today. I might sound selfish for considering Elisa¡¯s feelings and not Serenity¡¯s. ¡°You know Serenity better than I do. You should know her temper. After she learned of your identity, it would be great if she had epted it joyfully. If she was angry, don¡¯t me her. Give her some time to think about it. ¡°Indeed, I don¡¯t know her very well. But I feel that a person who has lost her parents and can yet remain cheerful shows that she¡¯s tough and sees things positively. I believe she can still calmly face the distrust between the two of you.¡± When Clive spoke up for Serenity, Zachary remained silent instead. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Seeing that Zachary was silent, Clive stopped speaking. A deathly hush descended upon the office. Sometimeter, Zachary suddenly asked Clive in a deep voice, ¡°When your wife gave up pursuing you back then, how did you make her change her mind and continue loving you?¡± Clive blinked, wondering if Zachary was trying to learn from his experience. ¡°If you¡¯re sincere to someone, they¡¯ll do the same to you. I treated her the way she did to me back then. She actually loves me. Before I epted her love, I pursued her and treated her well, so she soon forgave me.¡± Char14: 843 Zachary fell quiet once again. Clive noticed that Zachary did not n to say anything, so he rose to his feet and said, ¡°Zachary, I won¡¯t disturb you further. I¡¯ll take my leave.¡± Elisa would return tomorrow Given that things had ended in this state, everyone had to face reality. Zachary did not stand up to see him off. After Clive left, Josh came in. Zachary was not on guard at all in front of Josh. With an agonized expression, he asked Josh, ¡°Should I let go of Seren?¡± ¡°I think a brief separation is worthwhile for the sake of a lifetime¡¯s worth ofpanionship.¡± ¡°She wants a divorce.¡± ¡°Based on Serenity¡¯s personality, it¡¯s normal that she brings up a divorce out of fury. When couples are in the midst of a bitter row, they¡¯ll initiate a divorce. She might have initiated it, but have you both gotten divorced? Both of you haven¡¯t even gone to the city hall. All she did was mention it. ¡°Look at the young couples these days. They simply stir about divorce during their conflict. Both of you are just having a conflict. She made some remarks out of anger, and you treated them seriously?¡± Zachary scratched his head in distress and said, ¡°I¡¯m worried she¡¯ll nevere back to me anymore. Chapter 844 Chapter 844 Chapter 844 ¡°If this had happened two months ago, I believe she¡¯d happily agree to get a divorce without any regrets. But now, I don¡¯t think she¡¯ll do so. After all, it¡¯s not easy to get over a rtionship.¡± After pausing for a moment, Josh asked curiously, ¡°Have you gotten her pregnant?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°Nope¡­¡± Zachary and Serenity did not use protection. They tried their best to make a baby, but nothing happened. Perhaps they were not fated to have a baby yet. ¡°Since you don¡¯t have a child to connect you and Serenity, you have only yourself to rely on. Zachary, you¡¯re no fool. Since the incident took ce, you¡¯ve done a series of things based on instinct. Ask yourself. If you were Serenity, how would you feel after being deceived, imprisoned, and hit? ¡°Now, we¡¯re not talking about whether you lied to her. This isn¡¯t a big deal. The main issue is that the things you did after you made a mistake have upset Serenity. ¡°You fear she wants a divorce, but can you stop her by imprisoning her? This will only intensify your conflict with her. ¡°Let her go. Separate from her for a few days. Both of you should calm down. Pull yourself together and think about what you should do to regain Serenity¡¯s trust. It¡¯s because your web of lies has caused her to lose trust in you. ¡°Once she has calmed down, she¡¯ll reflect on the good qualities of yours and her memories with you, including those times she faced any hardships, you would stay by her side and help her out. These are all the memories between the two of you. ¡°When she reflects on your good qualities, just work hard to regain her trust. That¡¯s how you break the ice. If you keep imprisoning her, she¡¯ll think about the bad qualities of yours and how you lied to her. She won¡¯t remember all the good you¡¯ve done for her. ¡°Don¡¯t criticize her. Many people behave this way as well. When one criticizes another they¡¯ll surely think about the bad qualities of the other party. That¡¯s why she would criticize you non¨Cstop. Who would someone think of the good qualities of the other party while criticizing? Temporary memory loss usually urs in this case.¡± Zachary kept quiet and appeared to be deep in thought. Chapter 844 212 ¡°Zachary, give it some thought. In fact, if you¡¯d apologized to Serenity for lying to her, she would¡¯ve been fine after a few days. Both of you are now in a deadlock all because of the series of mistakes you made after your confession. You were adding insult to injury. ¡°Let¡¯s cast aside Serenity¡¯s opinion on it. If it were me, I would certainly be seething with anger if I was deceived, hit, and even imprisoned. ¡°Think of others. ¡°You came here in a rush. Have you eaten? I suppose you haven¡¯t really eaten in the past two days. Do you want to eat out? I¡¯ll treat you to a meal.¡± Zachary shook his head and said, ¡°I don¡¯t have an appetite.¡± ¡°Did Serenity go on a hunger strike?¡± ¡°No. She¡¯ll surely eat regardless of what happens.¡± Josh grinned. ¡°That¡¯s great. It¡¯s crucial to treat food as a high priority. Don¡¯t starve yourself.¡± ¡°She thinks she has the strength to fight me only after filling her stomach.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t use the word ¡®fight¡®. It seems like both of you are enemies. You both are married couples. It¡¯s merely a conflict. Which married couple has never had any conflict in their lives? ¡°Couples shouldn¡¯t go to bed angry. It¡¯ll all be over little by little.¡± Zachary looked at his best friend and said, ¡°Josh, you don¡¯t even have an official girlfriend, yet you can be a rtionship counselor and an expert in marriage.¡± Joshughed and said, ¡°As an outsider, I can see things more clearly than those involved. In fact, outsiders are clear about the situation except for both of you who are trapped in it. Zachary, you need to change your attitude. Get rid of your domineering attitude.Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 845 Chapter 845 Chapter 845 ¡°It¡¯s not a big deal now even though Serenity brought up the divorce because she hasn¡¯t taken action. All she did was draft a divorce agreement. As long as you haven¡¯t received the agreement, there¡¯s still a chance to turn back. It depends on how you handle it. ¡°Give it some thought. I¡¯ll go out and get you some food. Look at yourself. After a night, you lost the vitality you used to have. You look spiritless, and I sympathize with you. ¡°s, why aren¡¯t you in love with me instead? If you are, I guarantee that you won¡¯t be facing these troubles.¡± Zachary grabbed something from the desk and hurled it at Josh. He could not help but taunt, ¡°I¡¯m straight. Stop tricking me. If Ms. Sox finds out about it, you¡¯ll have to forget about getting together with her.¡± After Josh saw him smile, he said, ¡°Now that you canugh, I¡¯m relieved.¡± He left and bought his best friend some food. It warmed Zachary¡¯s heart. He was extremely fortunate to have Josh as his buddy. When Zachary was alone in the office, he rose to his feet and walked to the window. He gazed at the tall buildings in the distance. They said one could see the bigger picture when they took a step back. Was he driving her into a corner? Could he see the bigger picture if he took two steps back? As Zachary reflected on Josh¡¯s and his sister¨Cinw¡¯s advice, he was aware that his behavior was actually ruining his rtionship with Serenity. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. His sister¨Cinw, Jasmine, and Josh told him that Serenity was the sort who would ept reality. However, she needed to regain herposure at the moment. ording to his sister¨Cinw, Serenity resembled a heap of sand in his hand. The more he gripped it, the quicker the sand leaked through his fingers. Those who advised him had been indirectly reminding him that he was overbearing. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Chapter 845 Zachary¡¯s phone rang. He looked at the iing call and realized that it was Brandt calling him. Worried that something might happen to Serenity, Zachary promptly answered the call. ¡°Mr. Zachary, the missus¡¯s friend, Ms. Sox, is here¡­¡± ¡°What brings her there?¡± ¡°Ms. Sox sent a truck of chickens and ducks to the missus. The missus said that she has lost her freedom, so all she can do is rear some chickens in the vi to pass the time.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Besides chickens and ducks, there are also cats and dogs. The dogs are huskies¡­ I reminded the missus that you dislike furry animals, but she seemed to turn a deaf ear to my words.¡± Zachary fell quiet momentarily before he responded, ¡°Tell the missus that I¡¯m going back now. Ask Ms. Sox not to release the animals from the truck. Ask her to wait for my return first.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± After ending the call, Zachary sighed and mumbled, ¡°Seren, I¡¯m willing to tolerate everything you¡¯re doing, but I would like us to spend the rest of our lives together and not torture each other.¡± After sticking his phone back into his pocket, he nced at the sky and ground in the distance and made up his mind. He turned around and walked away from the window. He strode out of his office. Mr. Chaplin was standing at the door of the office with a pile of documents in his arms.¡± ¡°Mr. York, you¡¯d need to handle these documents on your own,¡± Mr. Chaplin said reluctantly. Chapter 846 Chapter 846 Chapter 846 Zachary nced at the stack of documents held by Mr. Chaplin and said, ¡°Send them to Callum and tell him to take care of it. If he doesn¡¯t dare make a decision, then tell him to ask Nana. ¡°Also, tell him that I might onlye back to thepany asionally these days. He¡¯s also a man from the York family, so he should help share the burden of the family business.¡± Mr. Chaplin nodded and agreed. Was the boss going to put aside his work and devote himself to coaxing his wife? This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Zachary tookrge strides to the elevator after instructing Mr. Chaplin. A few minutester, he left York Corporation in his car. At the same time, Mr. Chaplin knocked on Callum¡¯s office door and ryed what Zachary said to him. Callum¡¯s face fell when he looked at the pile of documents that Mr. Chaplin was holding. Then, he said, ¡°Leave them here. I¡¯ll tell you to get them when I¡¯m done.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum. ¡°By the way, Mr. Zachary said he might only asionallye to the office these days. He also said that since you¡¯re a man from the York family, you should also share the burden of the family business with him.¡± Callum nodded in understanding. ¡°I get it. You can go back to work.¡± He had a feeling this would happen. His eldest brother shifted the burden of thepany to his shoulder in order to coax his sister¨Cinw. Out of the nine brothers, Zachary and Callum were the core figures in the headquarters. Some of the other brothers were in charge of branch offices, some were in charge of hotel operations, and some did not work in the family businesses at all but started their own businesses instead. If Zachary was not avable, Callum had to take over. It was his fault for being a bachelor. He heard that his grandmother had been looking all over for a girlfriend for him recently¡­ Chapter 846 212 Callum suddenly shivered. After seeing how his eldest brother fell in love and lost his cool, Callum decided it was better to stay single. If he really wanted to get married one day, he would honestly tell his other half his true identity. He would not hide it as his eldest brother did. In any case, Zachary had be an example for the York family. In the future, they had to be completely honest and sincere in their rtionship. They would never dare deceive their partners. When Josh came back after buying food for Zachary, he saw that thetter had already left. He looked at the food in his hand and muttered, ¡°If I had known he couldn¡¯t wait, I would¡¯ve sent these to Jasmine instead. They¡¯re all her favorites.¡± If Zachary were here, he would say, ¡°You went to buy food for me, but you bought Jasmine¡¯s favorites? Josh, where¡¯s your sincerity?¡± Zachary rushed back to the vi as fast as he could. As soon as he entered, he saw therge truck parked in the yard. The truck was filled with cages containing chickens and ducks. When Zachary walked over, he frowned at the stench and hurried past the truck. Two women were engaged in a heart¨Cto¨Cheart talk in the living room. However, Serenity stopped talking when she heard Zachary¡¯s footsteps. Jasmine saw him enter and got up to greet him politely. ¡°Mr. York.¡± ¡°Hello, Ms. Sox.¡± Zachary responded to Jasmine¡¯s greeting warmly and asked courteously, ¡°Would you like anything to eat, Ms. Sox? I¡¯ll have someone prepare it for you.¡± ¡°No, thank you. I just came to send some small animals to Seren. She said she¡¯s bored at home and wants to raise some chickens. They can be sold for money when they grow, and she would be able to eat the eggs when the hensy eggs too since they¡¯re more nutritious.¡± Zachary looked at his beloved wife, but Serenity tensed her face and ignored him. He stared at her for a long time before turning back to Jasmine. ¡°Thank you, Ms. Sox. It¡¯s fine if Seren wants to rear chickens, but they can¡¯t be raised well here. Our family has several orchards. It¡¯ll be better to send those fowls to the orchards and rear them there.¡± He walked up to Serenity, and Jasmine sensibly switched ces with him. Zachary sat down beside Serenity and tried to hold her hand, but she pped it away. Chapter 847 Chapter 847 Chapter 847 Zachary¡¯s eyes shed with hurt, but he did not react as fiercely as he did yesterday. He said gently, ¡°Seren, do you really want to keep those little animals? If you do, I¡¯ll tell Brandt to lead the way. Ms. Sox and you can go see our family orchard. If you think it¡¯s suitable to rear chickens there, you can keep them there. You can take care of them yourself if you want or let the workers do it.¡± Serenity frowned. ¡°I didn¡¯t see an orchard at your house when you brought me over during the holidays.¡± ¡°The hills nted with fruit trees next to Wildridge Manor is the orchard. It¡¯s the York. family¡¯s ancestral manor.¡± Serenity was not surprised that her inws had a manor. They were rich. They were involved in all sorts of industries as long as there was money to be earned. ¡°Are you willing to let me out of this vi?¡± Serenity captured the key points of Zachary¡¯s remarks. Zachary looked at her, and she met his gaze. When the couple looked at each other, Serenity finally saw the fatigue his face bore. When she was upset, he was not happy either. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ve apologized countless times, but I still want to say that I¡¯m sorry. I shouldn¡¯t have lied to you for so long. I caused you to lose your trust in me, so I won¡¯t beg you to forgive me immediately and pretend as if nothing happened. ¡°I just hope you can give me a chance to regain your trust. Don¡¯t simply mention divorce again, okay? It really hurts me.¡± Unless a couple really wanted to divorce, mentioning it in the heat of the moment during a quarrel was easy to break the other party¡¯s heart. Serenity was silent for a moment before softening her tone. ¡°My heart is in a mess right now, and I might regret things I do or sayter¡­ Zachary, I don¡¯t want to talk to you right now. I just hope you can let me leave this ce and let me go back for a breather. ¡°I also need to think about how our marriage will go in the future. I need to face the reality of us both. You don¡¯t have to worry about me going far away after walking out the door. Where would I go? All my loved ones are here. Chapter 847 ¡°Besides, I won¡¯t run away. Running doesn¡¯t solve the problem.¡± Zachary nodded with a heavy heart. ¡°You can go back with Ms. Sox. L¡­ I also need to be alone for a while.¡± Serenity looked at him for a moment before standing up. Her tone was much gentler than before. ¡°Let¡¯s both calm down and cool off. I¡¯ll leave now,¡± she said in a slight hurry as if afraid that Zachary would change his mind. Zachary also stood up and looked at her deeply. ¡°I¡¯ll see you off.¡± Serenity did not refuse. Jasmine was quite surprised that Zachary came around. Of course, this was good. She was happy for her best friend. Serenity walked in front with Zachary following behind, and Jasmine brought up the rear. She could tell that Zachary was extremely reluctant. It was truly a tough decision for him to let Serenity go. However, he still managed to do it. Zachary¡¯s points were in the negatives, but she added a few points to him because of that action. Liberty happened to drive over with her son. She saw the vi gate open with a truck parked inside. The truck seemed to be loaded with¡­ chickens and ducks? That was besides the point. What was important was that she saw her sistere out. Zachary simply followed Serenity. The look of reluctance, pain, and conflict could all be seen in his eyes. ¡°Seren.¡± Liberty carried her son and got out of the car. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny was too young to know what was going on between the adults. When he saw his aunt, he struggled to get to the ground and trotted over to Serenity. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Hey, Sonny.¡± Chapter 847 3/3 Serenity was ted to see her nephew too. It had obviously only been a day, but it felt like an eternity had passed. During the time she lost her freedom, she especially missed her family and friends. Chapter 848 Chapter 848 Chapter 848 Serenity felt like she could go crazy if she was kept under house arrest. Fortunately, Zachary came around and was willing to return her freedom. ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± Sonny saw Zachary as Serenity picked him up, and he happily stretched his arms out to Zachary, wanting thetter to carry him. Zachary satisfied the little one and carried him. ¡°Higher, Uncle Zack. Go higher!¡± Zacharyughed and lifted Sonny up in the sky, generating streams ofughter from the little boy. ¡°That truck¡­¡± Not waiting for Liberty to finish her question, Zachary said, ¡°Seren said she wanted to eat chickens that she raised herself, so Ms. Sox helped to buy these chickens. I¡¯m nning to ask Brandt to take Seren to my orchard to see if we can move and breed these chickens there.¡± Liberty looked at her sister and asked suspiciously, ¡°Why do you want to raise chickens all of a sudden?¡± Seren paused and said, ¡°Since we already bought them, we need a ce to keep them.¡± Liberty looked at Serenity and then at Zachary, and understood that this was her sister¡¯s way of causing trouble¡­ It seemed like she was missing context. Zachary said he would ask the housekeeper to take Serenity to his family orchard. Did that mean Serenity was free? ¡°I won¡¯t go there, Zachary. Just let Brandt lead the driver to your family¡¯s orchard. Since my sister is here, I¡¯ll just go back with her.¡± Zachary said warmly, ¡°As you wish.¡± He had no problems with that. Serenity took Sonny back from his arms and said to her sister and best friend, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± ¡°Oh, yeah.¡± Chapter 848 2/2 Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine and Liberty both looked back at Zachary as they walked. Serenity carried Sonny to the car, pulled open the door and put him in, about to get in as well. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary suddenly called out to her. and was just The three women instantly tensed up, especially Serenity. Her first thought was that Zachary changed his mind, and she had to run away quickly. She acted on her thoughts and immediately pulled open the driver¡¯s door, but unfortunately, Zachary grabbed her arm and pulled her away before she could get into the car. ¡°Zachary, are you going back on your word?¡± Serenity questioned him loudly. Zachary was at a loss for words. She had no trust in him at all. What he did to her after she found out the truth also left asting fear in her. That was why she reacted this way. That realization made a knife twist in Zachary¡¯s heart. If he did not listen to Josh¡¯s advice and continued imprisoning Serenity, he would definitely lose her in the end¡­ ¡°I¡¯m not going back on my word, Seren.¡± Zachary¡¯s heart ached, but he did not show it on his face. His hand gripping her arm also loosened, and he backed up two steps to maintain a distance between them so as to reduce her tension and fear. ¡°I just wanted to remind you to let your sister drive since you¡¯re in a bad mood. It¡¯s safer if you sit in the back with Sonny.¡± Serenity looked at him suspiciously. Zachary turned to his sister¨Cinw and said, ¡°You drive, Liberty. Don¡¯t let Serenity drive for the time being.¡± He did not miss the damage at the front of Serenity¡¯s car and guessed it was caused by her reckless driving yesterday. Fortunately, she was fine. No big deal for a car to be damaged since he could always give her dozens of new cars, as long as she was willing to ept it. Chapter 849 Chapter 849 Chapter 849 Everyone sighed in relief at Zachary¡¯s words. They thought he was going back on his word. Fortunately, he was not. Liberty quickly said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Zachary. I¡¯ll look after Seren these days. I won¡¯t let her drive fast or drink alcohol!¡± Then, she added, ¡°If she really wants to drink, I¡¯ll let her drink a few cans with me at home. I won¡¯t let her go to the bar again.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll leave her in your care.¡± Zachary said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, stay at your sister¡¯s ce for a few days and tell me when you want toe home. I¡¯lle pick you up. If you don¡¯t want to live with me, you can stay at the house in Brynfield while I move back here.¡± Serenity looked at him for a long time and said, ¡°Take care.¡± She got into the car. ¡°Look after yourself, Zachary. I¡¯ll take care of Seren. I¡¯ll make sure she¡¯s hale and hearty when you pick her up.¡± Serenity was speechless. Was her sister raising her like a pig? After Liberty spoke to her brother¨Cinw, she got in the car. She fastened her seat belt, waved at Zachary, and drove away under his watchful eyes. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. ¡°Ms. Sox.¡± Zachary stopped Jasmine when she was also ready to drive away. ¡°Do you need something, Mr. York?¡± Jasmine¡¯s tone was polite. Zachary took out a set of keys from his trouser pocket and handed them to Jasmine, saying, ¡°This is one of the Valentine¡¯s Day gifts I prepared for Seren yesterday. It¡¯s a new car. The front of her current car was damaged. Can you help me pass the keys of the new car to her?¡± However, Jasmine did not ept the car keys. She said, ¡°Mr. York, do you have no Chapter $49 212 confidence in yourself, or do you not love Seren enough? Do you think that your goodbye today is forever? You have more opportunities to deliver the gift you prepared for Seren personally. Why do you need me to pass it to her?¡± Zachary pursed his lips and retraced his hand. ¡°Thank you, Ms. Sox. I¡¯ll deliver it to her in the future myself. Ms. Sox, can you put in a few good words for me in front of Seren?¡± ¡°Mr. York, no matter what, I¡¯m Seren¡¯s best friend. I¡¯m on her side. If you want me to put in a good word for you, it¡¯ll depend on your performance.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes were firm. ¡°I¡¯ll make Seren regain her trust in me.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°That¡¯s the spirit. I¡¯ll excuse myself now. Please take care of those poultry there.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Jasmine said goodbye to Zachary and drove away. Zachary stood in front of the vi and watched the two cars leave his territory until they were out of sight. Truth be told, he was terrified inside. However, he still forced himself to let go briefly. As Josh said, it was worthwhile to exchange a short separation for a lifetime ofpanionship. ¡°Mr. Zachary.¡± Brandt came out and called out to Zachary. Zachary looked away and nced at the big truck parked in the yard, then said to Brandt, ¡°Take the driver to the manor and let Sam handle him. Just tell Sam that Seren wants to rear the chickens.¡± Sam was the head butler of Wildridge Manor. He would arrange everything properly. ¡°Yes, sir.¡± Chapter 850 Chapter 850 Chapter 850 Brandt responded respectfully, then said in concern, ¡°It¡¯s cold and windy outside, sir. Let¡¯s go back inside. You haven¡¯t eaten anything since you got up today.¡± Zachary did not move and asked Brandt, ¡°Will shee back if I faint from hunger?¡± Brandt was speechless. Zachary smiled wryly. ¡°I was just asking. I won¡¯t neglect my own health. I still want to have a lot of children and grandchildren with Seren and live with her until our hair turns gray. I won¡¯t live to have gray hair if I starve myself.¡± Brandt quickly said, ¡°The missus eats and drinks well. I think this mentality of hers ismendable.¡± He was terrified that Zachary would deliberately starve to the point of fainting. If the missus did not come back, then he would starve to death. ¡°She¡­ She doesn¡¯t love me as much as I love her.¡± That was why she could be a little more ruthless. ¡°Jim,¡± Zachary shouted in a low voice. Jim hurriedly trotted over. ¡°Get the car. I want to go back to the manor for a few days.¡± ¡°Yes, sir.¡± Jim hurriedly informed the driver. A few minutester, Zachary¡¯s luxury car drove out of the big vi and roared its way to Wildridge Manor. In the lounge of the manor, Grandma May was receiving a cup of coffee that she had the maid make for her. Tania said to her mother¨Cinw, ¡°Mom, you¡¯re old and already not sleeping well. Drinking coffee will only make it worse. ¡°Coffee doesn¡¯t affect my sleep. It¡¯s Zack and Seren that is affecting my sleep.¡°. Grandma May took two sips of coffee. ¡°I need to feel refreshed to think about how to help them out.¡± Tania said, ¡°Are you still thinking of intervening at this point? Let them handle it themselves. Zack and Serenity only ended up like this because you intervened in the first ce. I always felt that Serenity and Zack are from different worlds, but you insisted on bringing them together. ¡°You should¡¯ve expected this day toe. Look, Zack will definitelye back to settle the score with you. He doesn¡¯t even need to do anything. He just needs to show you that deadpan face of his every day in front of you and follow you everywhere. You won¡¯t be able to get rid of him. It¡¯s sure to drive you mad.¡± Grandma May spewed out a mouthful of coffee. She coughed several times, stopped Tania from patting her back, and drew a tissue to wipe herself. She asked her daughter¨Cinw, ¡°Tania, do you think it¡¯s toote for me to hide? I would¡¯ve forgotten the method that brat uses to take revenge on me if you hadn¡¯t reminded me.¡± Back then, she nagged her grandson every day, telling him to repay her by marrying Serenity. Now, Zachary would act as she did. He would pop up in front of her all day with a serious and gloomy face and look at her resentfully. Even without him saying anything, Grandma May would feel so guilty that she would want to find a hole in the ground to hide in. Those who y with fire will eventually get burned¨Cthis saying was quite true. Grandma May yed a little too much. ¡°Will you be able to hide in peace? Zack is unfeeling in nature. He either doesn¡¯t fall in love, or he falls hard. Now, the person suffering the most is Zack. Serenity¡¯s feelings for him aren¡¯t as deep as his are for her. Furthermore, she¡¯s furious at Zack now. She must be taking it better than he is. ¡°Zack is still being stubborn. You mentioned he knocked Serenity out in order to keep her. Look at his reaction when he¡¯s faced with an emotional crisis¡­ This is because of you and Dad!¡± Tania ended upining quite a lot about her inws. Zachary was chosen as the heir of York Corporation when he was still nursing. He was personally raised by his grandparents. Tania admitted that her inws raised her son exceptionally. If she had been allowed to discipline and teach him as a mother, she might not have achieved such an effect. However, her inws did not teach her son how to love someone. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. It was easy to lose when it came to rtionships. Chapter 851 Chapter 851 Chapter 851 Grandma May choked and said sheepishly, ¡°I thought that woulde naturally and didn¡¯t have to be taught.¡± She added to herself, ¡°A couple only learns to cherish each other by experiencing ups and downs together.¡± Tania was speechless. A maid entered. ¡°Old Mrs. York and Mrs. York, Mr. Zachary is back.¡± Upon hearing that, Grandma May scurried away like a startled bird. Her movements were so agile that they were not befitting of her age. ¡°Tania, I¡¯ll go back to my room and lie down. If Zack asks, tell him that I¡¯ve fallen ill because I was too worried about him and Serenity.¡± Tania was speechless. ¡°Don¡¯t me me if Zack sends you to the hospital.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be fine as long as he doesn¡¯t send me to the crematorium.¡± Grandma May hid in her room as fast as possible. Shey on the bed and pretended to be sick. After lying down for a while, she did not hear a knock on the door. She thought to herself, ¡®Is that brat so angry that he doesn¡¯t even care about my so- called illness? So that¡¯s his y?¡® Grandma May did not know whether to continue lying down or if she should see what that brat was up to. What was Zachary doing? When he came back and did not see his nana, he turned to leave without saying a word. Tania chased after him. She walked behind him and asked with concern, ¡°Are you okay, Zack?¡± Zachary said sullenly, ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t look fine. Did you not rest well? Where¡¯s Serenity?¡± ¡°She left with her sister.¡± Chapter 857 2/2 Tania froze and stopped. When she saw her son was about to walk away again, she caught up to him and continued to ask, ¡°Zack, what do you mean by ¡®she left¡®?¡± ¡°It means she left.¡± Zachary finally stopped in front of the outdoor swimming pool. Then, he took off his jacket. ¡°Zack, have you gone mad? The weather is freezing. You¡¯ll catch a cold if you swim here.¡± Tania could not be bothered to pursue the matter and stopped her son from jumping into the pool and freezing. ¡°Do you think Serenity wille back if you catch a cold? The two of you are from different worlds. It¡¯s good that she left. With your qualifications, you can marry any girl you want. I¡¯ll help you arrange a meeting with the daughter of the Levine family. What about the Dawson family? ¡°There are so many young nobledies in Wiltspoon, and every one of them is better than Serenity. Zack, you¡¯ve already repaid your nana, so she won¡¯t interfere with your marriage in the future. Just forget about Serenity. Don¡¯t torture and hurt yourself for All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. her.¡± Tania thought the young couple had terminated their marriage. ¡°Zack, just marry a girl from a family which matches ours. Listen to Mom, okay? It¡¯s easy for you to amodate Serenity, but it¡¯s very hard for her to chase after you. The gap between you two is too great. She can¡¯t catch up no matter how hard she tries, and she¡¯ll get tired from chasing after you. It¡¯s fine if you¡¯ve separated. Think of it as setting her free¡­¡± n Zachary looked at his mother speechlessly. Tania quickly paraphrased, ¡°Think of it as you two letting each other go.¡± Chapter 852 Chapter 852 Chapter 852 ¡°Mom.¡± If Zachary did not exin clearly, his mother would actually arrange a blind date for him and cause misunderstandings. He said in a low voice, ¡°When I said Serenity left with her sister, I meant she went back for a small period of time to calm down. She¡¯s not leaving forever. I won¡¯t allow her to note back either.¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. God knew how difficult it was for him to let go and allow her to follow her sister home. ¡°I also need time to calm down, but it¡¯s hard for me, so I want to jump into the pool and take a dip. Maybe that will help cool me down. I¡¯m not trying to harm myself to gain her sympathy.¡± Tania blinked and asked, ¡°You¡¯re not divorced yet?¡± ¡°Do you want me to get a divorce?¡± ¡°Yes and no. I¡¯ve always felt that you two weren¡¯tpatible. Your social circles arepletely different. It¡¯ll be very hard for Serenity to squeeze in. Perhaps you two can¡¯t understand that now and don¡¯t know what it feels like, so you¡¯re able to get along well in the beginning. However, you¡¯ll see what I mean when you take Serenity out to socialize, talk about business, and attend various parties, fundraisers, and other activities. ¡°You may be fine as long as you¡¯re thick¨Cskinned and aren¡¯t afraid of peopleughing at you, but Serenity will have it worse. Not even the wives of the nouveau riche can squeeze into the circle of ladies from high society, let alone Serenity. She¡¯ll easily be ostracized, ridiculed, and mocked. Tania had lived her whole life in a wealthy family and usually befriended noblewomen with a status simr to hers. She would greet thedies with a status inferior to hers with a nod, but she could not ept them into her circle. Not many people could be so down¨Cto¨Cearth like Grandma May. ¡°However, you¡¯ve fallen in love with her, so I don¡¯t want you to divorce. I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll remain a bachelor for life if you divorce. There¡¯s no mother out there who wishes for their son to be a bachelor forever, let alone such an exceptional brat¡­ I mean man.¡± Tania quickly corrected herself when her son looked at her sullenly. It must be Chapter 852 213 because she spent too much time with her mother¨Cinw recently. The olddy was a bad influence on her. ¡°You two have been married for almost five months, but you still don¡¯t have a baby. If you did, you could just remain a bachelor. We can die in peace because at least you¡¯ll still have your child to take care of you when we pass on. However, you don¡¯t have a child yet. ¡°Zack, have you two gone to the hospital to check on your health?¡± ¡°We¡¯re capable of having a child, Mom.¡± Zachary emphasized that he was in very good health. ¡°Serenity is also very healthy. We were just a couple in name. How would we have a child?¡± Tania choked. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Mom. Go y chess with Dad. I¡¯ll swim to calm myself down. I won¡¯t abuse myself.¡± Zachary took off his clothes, ignoring his mother¡¯s obstructions, and jumped into the pool. Once he was underwater¡­ God, it was freezing! ¡°Zack, Zack! Gosh, you never listen!¡± Tania scolded him and shouted in the direction of the house. ¡°Mom, Mom! Your darling grandson jumped into the pool!¡± Zachary choked on a mouthful of water. His elegant mother must have been influenced by his nana. The distance was far, and Grandma May was lying in her room pretending to be sick, so she could not hear. When Tania saw that it was useless even after shouting twice, she left her son behind and quickly went into the house. She could not persuade her son, so she had to ask Grandma May to step in. She felt her son was trying to get sick so that her daughter¨Cinw would feel distressed. When Grandma May heard that Zack jumped into the outdoor pool in this cold weather, she could not pretend to be sick anymore. She sprung from bed and put on a jacket while responding to her daughter¨Cinw, ¡°I¡¯ll call him back. That little brat. Chap 852 Even if he wants me to feel guilty and me myself, he doesn¡¯t have to jump into the pool on a cold day.¡± Tania thought, ¡®So this is between the pair of grandmother and grandson?¡® Chapter 853 Chapter 853 hapter 853 ¡°Tania, get someone to cook ginger soup for that boy. Add more ginger so that it¡¯s spicier.¡± Grandma May came out of the room and instructed her daughter-inw as she walked outside. Tania agreed and instructed the maid ordingly. When the two women arrived at the pool, Zachary was still swimming around in the water like a fish. ¡°Zachary York,¡± Grandma May shouted angrily. Zachary nced at his nana before swimming to the edge of the pool. Then, he climbed up and sat there. Grandma May walked around the pool and went to him, saying in distress, ¡°What are you still doing sitting here? Hurry back into the house.¡± ¡°I want to rx and calm down, Nana.¡± Grandma May scolded him. ¡°If you want to calm down, you can lock yourself in your room. I can assure you that no one will bother you. Why do you need to jump into the pool to do so?¡± ¡°It¡¯s quite effective.¡± Zachary added indifferently, ¡°The cold water cleared my mind and calmed my irritability.¡± He was telling the truth. Grandma May was speechless. ¡°Since you¡¯ve calmed down, put on your clothes and go inside. You¡¯ll catch a cold if you sit here for a long time.¡± Zachary pursed his lips. Tania brought his jacket and draped it over him, saying, ¡°If you catch a cold, I¡¯ll go to Serenity to settle ounts with her. She caused you to catch a cold.¡± ¡°Mom, you won¡¯t do such an unreasonable thing, right?¡± Zachary was not worried that his mother would go to Serenity. His mother was just harsh on the mouth because she could not do something that unreasonable. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Tania choked and said, ¡°A mother will do anything for her child.¡± Grandma May added, ¡°Zack, go back to the house and change. I want to talk to you.¡± Zachary looked up at his nana and said sarcastically, ¡°I thought you would be sick for a long time before getting out of bed.¡± When he came back and did not see his nana, he figured that she was hiding. Her usual tactic was to pretend to be sick. Grandma May had a thick face and was not offended by her grandson¡¯s sarcasm. She said, ¡°I¡¯m old but strong. I won¡¯t get sick easily. ¡°Hurry and get up. Go back to the house to change your clothes.¡± She lightly kicked Zachary and said, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you in the pavilion. I got someone to cook ginger soup for you, soe out after you finish the soup.¡± Then, she turned and walked away. Tania advised, ¡°Zack, go change your clothes or you¡¯ll really catch a cold. You don¡¯t want to get another jab, do you?¡± Zachary said bitterly, ¡°Mom, the person who forced me to get injections isn¡¯t by my side anymore.¡± Tania¡¯s heart sank, and she said heavily, ¡°Zack, it¡¯s normal for Serenity to be angry after finding out the truth. Just give her a few days to calm down. It¡¯ll be fine.¡± ¡°My deception made her lose all her trust in me. I don¡¯t know how long it¡¯ll take for her to trust me again.¡± Zachary thought about how he called out to Serenity beforeing here. Just by calling her name, she was so frightened she wanted to run away. Zachary¡¯s heart clenched in pain. Tania sighed. ¡°You¡¯re still young and have your whole life ahead of you. As long as you don¡¯t give up, so what if it takes more time? You have a lifetime to spend.¡± Yes, they had a lifetime ahead of them. Zachary was silent for a long time. With his mother¡¯s repeated urging, he finally got up and went back into the house to change his clothes. Chapter 854 Chapter 854 Chapter 854 After changing his clothes, Zachary drank the bowl of ginger soup under his mother¡¯s gaze. He frowned because the soup was way too spicy. ¡°Mom, why is there so much ginger? It¡¯s so spicy.¡± ¡°Your Nana asked them to add more ginger. If you don¡¯t like ginger soup, then don¡¯t do such stupid things again in the future.¡± Zachary put down the bowl. ¡°I really was just trying to calm down. I wasn¡¯t trying to do anything stupid.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, if you say so. Are you calm now? Go talk to Nana. She¡¯s the one who started it. You wouldn¡¯t have ended up like this if not for her.¡± Tania was somewhat resentful of her mother-inw. Her son was such an excellent man. It was not like he could not find a wife, but the old woman insisted on him marrying her savior. At first, they were all grateful to Serenity and wanted to thank her, but Serenity refused. Later, Serenity and Grandma May got along well, and Serenity won the olddy¡¯s favor. Tania secretly wondered if Serenity refused theirrge sum of money because she knew of Grandma May¡¯s identity and wanted more. Her husband had said, ¡°Let¡¯s wait and see.¡± As they watched, Serenity eventually became their daughter-inw. Serenity was in the dark about Grandma May¡¯s identity and she did not know that Zachary was the CEO of York Corporation when she married him. If not for these facts that Tania only found out afterward, she would have thought Serenity was a scheming woman. Then, she found out that the couple treated each other like ice. They lived in the same house but rarely communicated and even slept in separate rooms. Her son also told Serenity to sign a contract. Tania had no idea about the content of the contract. However, she believed her son would not put himself at a disadvantage. The contract must have been more restrictive on Serenity¡¯s part. s, at some point, the feelings between the young couple gradually warmed up. Tania admitted that she had been waiting for the couple to divorce. She had always felt that Serenity was not worthy of her eldest son. She could not care if it was her second son. She would be able to ept it no matter who the woman was as long as her son liked the woman. However, it was different for her eldest son. Zachary was the sessor of the family. As the head of the family, how could he have a wife who was an orphan and had a bunch of horrible rtives? No matter how independent Serenity was, unless she could rely on her own skills to marry into a wealthy family like Audrey did, not everyone would be able to ept her. Otherwise, the pressure on Serenity would be too heavy. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. There were nine sons in Zachary¡¯s generation, and it was impossible for all of them to marry a woman with no reputable family background like Zachary did. In the future, Serenity¡¯s sisters-inw would be from rich families. How would Serenity, as the eldest, prove her worth? Tania felt that Grandma May did not consider that for Serenity. The old woman liked Serenity, so she forced her grandson to marry Serenity. She did not think about what Serenity would face in the future. Zachary was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°Mom, Serenity and I are fated. If we weren¡¯t, we wouldn¡¯t have developed feelings for each other even if Nana wanted me to repay her.¡± It was said that fate brings people together no matter how far apart they may be. Zachary believed in fate. There were many people in this world who were not meant to be and could not be a couple even after knowing each other for a lifetime. That was why Serenity and he were linked by the red thread of fate. ¡°I don¡¯t regret marrying Serenity either. I just feel like I let her down. When she married me, I didn¡¯t give her a betrothal gift or host a wedding ceremony for her. I only made up for our wedding ring afterward. She has suffered a lot because of me.¡± If it were an ordinary person signing that agreement at the beginning, they would have felt extremely aggrieved. However, Serenity signed it and kept to the contract. Instead, it was he who failed to do so. He asked her not to fall in love with him in the contract, saying that he could not reciprocate her feelings. In the end, it was he who begged her to love him¡­ Chapter 855 Chapter 855 Chapter 855 Tania thought about how most people only married once in their lives. Serenity married her son, but she did not get anything. It was not strange for her to feel wronged. Tania said, ¡°You can make up for the betrothal gift and wedding ceremony.¡± Zachary knew that it was possible to make up for it, but indisputably, he had always. made her suffer. I He stood up. ¡°I¡¯ll go talk to Nana. Don¡¯t me her. Maybe this is a trial I have to ovee. A trial of love.¡± It was because his life had been smooth sailing since birth and he had never suffered any setbacks. Thus, God was giving him a trial now. ¡°Zack, I still have to remind you this-our identity has been exposed to the people in Serenity¡¯s circle. Her rtives and sister¡¯s ex-husband¡¯s family may try to pester you. You can¡¯t give them benefits for Serenity¡¯s sake. Those people are like vampires; they¡¯lle back for more if you give them anything even for once. ¡°They¡¯ll cling to you and suck you dry. It wouldn¡¯t be bad to give them benefits if they treated Serenity well, but they¡¯ve been horrible to Serenity and her sister. I can¡¯t stand them. They have no right to call themselves Serenity¡¯s rtives. They¡¯re even worse than neighbors. I feel suffocated just thinking that you¡¯ll give them benefits.¡± Zachary¡¯s face was sullen. ¡°I act ording to Serenity¡¯s attitude. She¡¯s not willing to reconcile with them, so there¡¯s no way I¡¯ll give them benefits. In fact, the troubles they¡¯re facing now are caused by me. ¡°As for her sister¡¯s ex-husband and his family, he¡¯s already the past, so they have nothing to do with each other anymore. Is Hank going to run to me and say that he¡¯s my brother-inw?¡± Tania said, ¡°I¡¯m d you¡¯re aware. If there¡¯s one thing I like about Serenity, it¡¯s that she knows how to discriminate between people who are kind to her and those who aren¡¯t.¡± She was not some kind of saint. Even if someizens tried to morally ckmail her, she persisted against it. Tania read online how Serenity bashed theizens who tried to morally ckmail her. If theizens had also lost their parents when they were ten years old, with the insurance payout divided among their grandparents and rtives who drove them out and took over their property, would theizens be able to forgive their grandparents? If they could not, then they had no right to criticize Serenity and Liberty for not giving money to their grandparents. In reality, how many grandchildren took care of their grandparents? It was good enough if children took care of their own parents. Some old people believed that they could not even count on their children, so how could they count on their grandchildren instead? It was only by wearing another¡¯s shoes that one could understand the experience, but all they did was hide behind a screen and act like keyboard warriors, and even got paid to morally ckmail Serenity. Serenity hoped that one day, those keyboard warriors who liked to morally ckmail others would have a taste of their own medicine. Zachary¡¯s expression softened slightly, and he said, ¡°She grew up in a different environment, so her character developed differently.¡± Serenity was gentle yet strong. As long as she had moral standing, she would be able to stay firm. If she did not have reason on her side, she would immediately bow her head and apologize. ¡°What a poor girl.¡± Tania was a little heartbroken when she thought about the environment her daughter -inw grew up in. If the young couple could make up, as a mother-inw, she could dote on her daughter-inw more in the future. Grandma May sat in front of the stone table at the pavilion. There were many flowers nted around the pavilion. Although the weather was still cold, it was almost spring. When spring came, the grass and trees would be revived, and Wildridge Manor would be filled with colors. One could appreciate the blooming of hundreds of flowers while sitting under the pavilion. Zachary stepped into the pavilion and sat opposite his grandmother, blocking her view of the flowers. ¡°Your grandfather used to do that too. He would always sit right in front of me when I was admiring the flowers. He was tall like a small mountain even when sitting down, so he would end up blocking my view. I could only admire him instead of the flowers.¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Zachary took after his grandfather. ¡°Do you want me to talk to Seren? I¡¯ll put in some good words for you.¡± Chapter 856 Chapter 856 Chapter 856 Zachary pursed his lips for a while before saying, ¡°She wants to calm down, so don¡¯t bother yet. Don¡¯t go for now.¡± Grandma May hummed. ¡°Zack, I¡¯m d you let her go back with her sister. You¡¯ve improved. You¡¯re not as domineering as before and didn¡¯t force her to stay. It¡¯s good that you learned when to let go and how to give each other some space.¡± Zachary¡¯s face was sullen. ¡°I¡¯ll go find Seren in a couple of days, but not to plead for you. I should also apologize to her since I lied to her first.¡± Zachary snorted coldly. The grandmother and grandson took after one another. ¡°What are you nning to do next?¡± ¡°What do you think I should do next?¡± Zachary retorted. Grandma May smiled and reached out to touch her eldest grandson¡¯s handsome face lovingly. Then, she poked him in the head. ¡°You have a brain, so think for yourself. Take your time and slowly figure out what to do. ¡°Loving someone isn¡¯t as simple as falling in love. You need to learn to understand her, trust her, and ept everything about her. ¡°Your motherined that your grandfather and I taught you everything except how to love someone. It was something that slipped our minds. By the time we realized it, you were already an adult¡­ Did you know? Your grandfather was still worried about you before he passed. ¡°He was worried about your marriage. You¡¯re cold and different by nature. When you were a teenager, you had so many girls who adored you but you wouldn¡¯t even give them the time of day. When you grew up, you brought a group of bodyguards with you wherever you went. You don¡¯t allow any young women outside the family toe within ten feet of you.¡± ¡°Your grandfather saw this and was worried, but he was too sick to care about you. Before he died, he could only entrust me to worry in his stead. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Actually, I have a superstitious side. After meeting Serenity, I asked for her birthday and secretly consulted a fortune-teller. He said you two are destined to be husband and wife, so I decided you marry Serenity despite what everyone else thought.¡± Zachary was speechless. Who was that fortune-teller? Well, he was quite urate. ¡°That fortune-teller was urate. You two ended up developing feelings for each. other. Although there are some twists and turns, I believe you can solve this. What¡¯s a little bit of suffering? The bitterness now will only make the rest of your lives that much sweeter.¡± Zachary tensed his face and did not make a sound. He already missed Serenity. After just a few hours apart, he could not wait to go to his sister-inw¡¯s ce to pick Serenity up. s, he knew better he could not. He had to bear with it. He had to endure it. Let Serenity stay with her sister for a few days. If she did not contact him first, then he could not bother her. Even if he went, he had to do so in secret and look at her from afar. Hang on, what if she never contacted him again? Would he not go to her either? He could not do that. He had to go see her tomorrow¡­ No,ter today. What if she forgot about him? ¡°Zack, everything is achievable with earnestness. Serenity is a bit hard-hearted, but her heart isn¡¯t made of stone. I believe you can win her back.¡± Chapter 857 Chapter 857 Chapter 857 Grandma May patted his shoulder. ¡°Go get her! You have my moral support in chasing after your wife!¡± Zachary said, ¡°Nana, I sense the sarcasm in your tone.¡± Grandma May¡¯s eyes twinkled, but she denied it and said, ¡°Do you, now? How am I being sarcastic?¡± ¡°I said before that I won¡¯t pursue my wife¡­¡± ¡°Ah, now that you¡¯ve reminded me, you did indeed mention¡­ Either way, haven¡¯t you been eating your words recently? Once you get used to it, nothing woulde as a surprise anymore the more you eat your words.¡± Zachary was speechless. Was she his nana or not? After bickering with Nana and listening to her reminisce about the past he was not privy to, Zachary somewhat understood why she insisted that he marry Serenity. It was because of his grandfather¡¯sst words and that nameless fortune-teller, who said that Serenity and he were destined to be husband and wife, so his nana stubbornly insisted on him marrying Serenity. Of course, Zachary was grateful to that fortune-teller now. If he had not fallen in love with Serenity, he would have smashed that fortune-teller¡¯s stall. Meanwhile, Serenity left Zachary¡¯s vi with Liberty and first returned to the house in Brynfield. She initially wanted to pack up all her belongings and leave, but after a second thought, she only took a few sets of fresh clothes and moved into her sister¡¯s ce. She left the two cats and one dog behind and called Mrs. Lane to send the pets back to Zachary since he gave them to her. When Mrs. Lane sent the pets to Zachary, he looked at the three furries, which had been fattened up for a long time, and said, ¡°The missus doesn¡¯t have time to take care of them for the time being. Mrs. Lane, you¡¯re familiar with them, so you¡¯re responsible for taking care of them until the missus returns. ¡°Take care of the flowers on the balcony as well. They¡¯re Seren¡¯s favorite.¡± Mrs. Laneplied respectfully. As she was preparing to leave with the pets, Zachary added, ¡°Don¡¯t let Snowball eat too much. It¡¯s as round as a ball now.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless, but said agreeably, ¡°Yes, sir.¡± In fact, Mrs. Lane was the main caretaker of the pets after they were delivered to Serenity. She thought she had to feed the pets well since they were given by Mr. Zachary to his wife. However, she ended up feeding the dog until it became as round as a ball, causing its master to disdain it for being chonky. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Meanwhile, Serenity was sleeping at her sister¡¯s ce. Liberty knew Serenity was not feeling well, so she did not bother her sister and let her be a little pig at home all day. Liberty was also relieved after fetching her sister home from Zachary¡¯s ce. She could not neglect her store, which was currently being renovated, so she took off to work with Sonny after saying a word or two to Serenity. Her busyness kept her from home until it was dark. Unexpectedly, Hank was in front of the building again. Liberty, who was pushing her e-bike, wanted to crash it into him. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like I¡¯m an enemy. I came over to tell you something.¡± Hank disliked Liberty¡¯s current attitude toward him. Liberty was nice to him in the past. Even if they were divorced, they still had a son together. Did she have to look at him so coldly every time she saw him? ¡°What is it?¡± Liberty asked coldly. Chapter 858 Chapter 858 Chapter 858 ¡°Daddy,¡± Sonny called Hank. Hank took two steps forward, picked his son up, and teased him for a while. When Liberty parked the e-bike, he said, ¡°Your granddad took some of your cousins to my office to look for me.¡± Liberty frowned. ¡°What for?¡± She already divorced Hank. Right before the divorce was finalized, her granddad even took a sum of money from her ex-mother-in- law amounting to several tens of thousands. She wondered if her ex-mother-inw managed to get the money back. Probably not. There was no way money that went into her granddad¡¯s pocket coulde back out again. Both parties were brazen and shameless. It would definitely be fun watching them tear into each other. It was a shame she could not witness it. ¡°I¡¯m guessing they came to town to find Serenity after finding out that she¡¯s Mr. York¡¯s wife. They couldn¡¯t find her-Serenity¡¯s store wasn¡¯t open, so they went to Brynfield, but they couldn¡¯t enter. Serenity isn¡¯t answering their calls either. ¡°They wanted to find you, but they didn¡¯t know where you live, so they came looking for me instead.¡± It caused him to be misunderstood by his new wife. He spent a lot of effort trying to coax an angry Jessica. Jessica hated how Hank and Liberty were still in contact. ¡°You told them that I live here?¡± Hank saw his son¡¯s fair and ruddy face and could tell that Liberty took good care of the boy. He said faintly, ¡°I didn¡¯t tell him. I just said that we broke off contact after the divorce, and I don¡¯t know where you¡¯re staying.¡± Those people did not have good intentions. Hank did not care if Liberty was pestered by her family, but he was afraid that the pestering would affect his son¡¯s life. ¡°Two of your cousins have some connections. They¡¯ll ask around, so sooner orter they¡¯ll find out where you live. If theye to your ce to cause trouble, then send Sonny to me. Don¡¯t let them scare him.¡± It had been a while since Hank and Jessica started being intimate, but there was still no change in Jessica¡¯s belly. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. His mother kept muttering in front of him, saying that Jessica was infertile. Hank was infuriated by his mother¡¯s remark. Jessica and he had only been together for a short period of time, not a decade. There would only be a problem if she could not get pregnant after eight to ten years of marriage. However, there were exceptions where a couple only got a child after many years of marriage. There was a janitor at hispany who got married at neen, but she never got pregnant after the marriage. She took all sorts of supplements, but it was useless. The couple finally gave up and adopted a little girl who was abandoned. A few yearster, they adopted a son. The boy came from a family who already had several sons and he was the youngest. The boy¡¯s family felt like it was not worth raising him, so they gave him away. However, after twenty years, when the janitor was thirty-nine years old, she was suddenly expecting. She had long since given up on getting pregnant, so she did not know that she had a child growing inside her. When her belly grew bigger, she thought she had a terminal illness and cried to her husband that she was dying. Her husband took her to the doctor, whoter told her that she was pregnant. She could not believe it. She got married at neen but only conceived a child at thirty-nine. When her daughter was born, her adopted daughter was already married while her adopted son was in high school. Both her adopted children were filial to their adoptive mother. Her husband died a few years after their daughter was born, and the adopted children helped her in raising their little sister. The family was living well now. Her biological daughter did not have to worry about school because her adopted son was a top student and was good at making money. He was already earning a living when he was still in university. With her son taking care of her young daughter, the mother had nothing to worry about. She was too idle, so she found a cleaning job to pass the time and earn some pocket money. Of course, Hank did not want him and Jessica to be married for twenty years before having children. If that happened, his parents and sister, who were already dissatisfied with Jessica, would definitely cause a scene. Chapter 859 Chapter 859 Chapter 859 As Jessica was not yet pregnant, Hank was afraid that his rtionship with Sonny would be increasingly distant. That was especially so when he saw Liberty and Duncan together. Even if he felt that Duncan could not possibly like Liberty, he was still worried that his son would call another man ¡°father¡±. He wanted to take the opportunity to take Sonny with him and raise him for a period of time, so as to cultivate their rtionship as father and son. He wanted to let Jessica get along with Sonny too. If Jessica could not get pregnant, and Liberty wanted to remarry, he would fight for Sonny¡¯s custody and take him back. Hank was still Sonny¡¯s father, after all. In no way Hank could allow Sonny to call another man his father. ¡°They already know we¡¯re divorced-why would they pester me? Even if theye, I¡¯m not afraid of them. Sonny isn¡¯t close enough to you all. Besides, you just married that Yates girl. What will she think if you take Sonny back with you? ¡°You¡¯ll have a child with the Yates girl eventually, so I¡¯m notfortable with you taking Sonny. Your parents and wife have many conflicts too. If Sonny goes with you, your parents will definitely spoil him and invariably provoke Jessica. Only Sonny will be at a risk. ¡°Hank, I hope you can abide by the conditions we agreed on during the divorce.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t talk to me about the conditions of the divorce. You got so much money from me.¡± Hank thought about how bad his job was going now. He lost his bonus and could barely get by with his basic sry. His extra ie was also cut off because those partners did not want to cooperate with Waltham anymore. Thus, he had no extra ie. He was d he worked hard before and had more than a million as personal savings. Even if he lost his job, it would not affect his life for the time being. However, he still hated the person who caused him to lose everything. It was said that breaking off a person¡¯s financial resources was like killing their parents. Liberty must have told Zachary to do it. Zachary wanted to help Liberty vent her anger, so it was equivalent to Liberty being involved. That was why Hank was furious with Liberty. Liberty took her son back from Hank¡¯s arms with a vague smile. ¡°I promised you time and again that I won¡¯t try to retaliate against you. Did you not understand my words? Are you ming me now? ¡°Thank you foring all the way here to tell me these things.¡± After saying that, she carried her son upstairs. Hank turned to look at her and raised his voice, ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to invite me up for a coffee?¡± ¡°There¡¯s no cup for you.¡± Hank was speechless. She took his money and rented such a good ce to live in, but she was not even going to invite him over for a cup of coffee. What a ruthless woman! ¡°Mommy, why doesn¡¯t Daddy live with us?¡± Sonny asked innocently. The little boy realized it was getting harder to see his daddy. His favorite was his mommy and his aunt. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. However, his daddy was still his daddy. There were times he still missed his daddy. ¡°Daddy¡¯s workce is too far from where we live now. It¡¯s not convenient for him to go to work if he lives with us.¡± Sonny seemed to understand. He asked, ¡°Mommy, why aren¡¯t we living in our old home?¡± Liberty was at a loss for words. The boy had grown up a little after the New Year¡¯s holidays and was starting to question things. She thought about it and said, ¡°Our old home is being renovated. The renovations will take a long time, so we won¡¯t move back to our old home for a long, long time.¡± Sonny hummed and stopped asking. When the mother and son arrived home, Serenity had made dinner. She was bored and sitting in front of the sofa with her drawing board on the coffee table, doodling to pass the time. ¡°Aunt Seren.¡± Sonny slipped out of his mother¡¯s arms as soon as he entered the house and called out happily to Serenity. Serenity put down the brush in her hand, smiled, and spread her arms. When her nephew ran over, she picked up the little boy and kissed him several times, asking with a smile, ¡°Did you miss me, Sonny?¡± Chapter 860 Chapter 860 Chapter 860 ¡°Yeah.¡± Sonny wrapped his arms around Serenity¡¯s neck and returned her kisses with several of his own on her cheek, making Serenity¡¯s heart burst with joy and love for this little cutie. ¡°Why are you back sote, Liberty? I finished making dinner long ago,¡± Serenity asked her sister while hugging her nephew. ¡°The interior designer finished workte, so I had to leave a littleter as well. I was thinking ofing back to cook for you, but you already did.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I just suffered some emotional hurt. It¡¯s not like I¡¯m sick. You don¡¯t need to cook for me.¡± Liberty walked over and looked at the painting Serenity made. It was a hairpin. ¡°Your drawing sucks when you¡¯re not in a good mood. Stop drawing for now.¡± Liberty helped her sister put the drawing board away. ¡°Did you go out for a walk today?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t want to move, so I slept all day.¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Take a walk tomorrow. You¡¯ll just feel worse if you stay cooped up at home all day.¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°I¡¯ll go back to work tomorrow. I need to rush the orders from the online store I got before the holidays. The students would not start school until next Monday. Today was Friday, so she could use the weekend to catch up with her orders. She would not be constantly reminded of Zachary lying to her if she had something to distract herself with. There was a snowball effect where if that was not on her mind, then she would not get angry and consequently improve her mood. ¡°Sounds good.¡± Liberty did not stop her sister from going back to the store, but she reminded her, ¡°I met Hank downstairs. He came over just to tell me that our granddad went downtown again with his ss of grandsons.¡± Serenity frowned at that. ¡°Why did theye here? Do they think we have lots of money for them after they found out that Zachary is the heir of the York family and I¡¯m his wife?¡± Liberty said faintly, ¡°Do you think they won¡¯t think that?¡± Those people had faces thicker than walls-possessing great shamelessness that gave them unsolicited boldness to do and think of anything. ¡°So what if they do? They can go straight to Zachary.¡± Serenity¡¯s conflict with her old family was the most severe. ¡°They might actually just do that.¡± Serenity was silent. Would they really go to Zachary for money? She had no idea. ¡°They¡¯re having a bad time now. If they don¡¯t pester Zachary for money after knowing his identity, the sun might rise from the west.¡± Serenity¡¯s voice was cold. ¡°Even if they lose their jobs and fail in their businesses, they have more than enough savings. It¡¯s unlikely their quality of life will be affected for the time being, but they¡¯re always thinking about asking for money from us. They¡¯re shameless to the core!¡± They could not bear to spend the money they had saved but never hesitated at the thought of spending other people¡¯s money. Who owed them? ¡°They wanted a share of the money I got from the divorce too. They called me to borrow money from me, but I refused.¡± After Liberty helped her sister put away the drawing board, she went into the kitchen and brought out the food that her sister cooked. Meanwhile, Serenity carried her nephew to wash his hands. The three of them were soon seated at the small table to dine. Sonny could eat by himself now. Although he dropped food all over the table, Liberty still let him eat by himself. He would be starting preschool in September. Ding dong¡­ Ding dong¡­ The doorbell rang. ¡°I¡¯ll get it.¡± Serenity put down her spoon. ¡°I guess they might have found their way here.¡± Chapter 861 Chapter 861 Chapter 861 The moment Serenity opened the door, a palm swung toward her. She reacted quickly and caught the hand. It was Jessica. Jessica thought the person who came to open the door would be Liberty and raised a hand to p the moment the door opened. She did not expect it to be Serenity instead. Serenity learned kickboxing and had quick reflexes, so she did not get hit. ¡°It¡¯s you? ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Jessica saw that it was Serenity. Serenity shoved Jessica and her hand aside, resulting in her taking a few steps back and creating space between them both. ¡°Where¡¯s Liberty? Tell her to get out here. She seduced my husband!¡± After work, Hank left her behind at the office in a hurry. Jessica was already furious when the Hunt family came to thepany to find Hank and called him brother-inw. Hank and Liberty were divorced. How did they get the nerve to call Hank their brother- inw? Did they want Hank and Liberty to remarry? Her inws thought that way, and so did the Hunt family. Did they think she was dead? She secretly followed Hank and found out that he hade to look for Liberty. Only when Hank had left and was far away did she show herself. Serenity said sarcastically, ¡°My sister dumped your husband. Why would she go back and seduce him? She¡¯s not blind. What? Did the scumbag you snatch from my sister fail to give you a sense of security?¡± ¡°Your sister divorced Hank while Hank and I just got our marriage license yesterday. We¡¯re husband and wife now. Your sister no longer has anything to do with him, so she should stay away from him. Why is she meeting him privately behind my back? All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. ¡°Is she trying to take revenge on me? She¡¯s deliberately losing weight so she can seduce Hank, right?¡± ¡°Pah, who do you think you are? Are you worth my sister going through that effort? Do you think everyone is like you, treating scum as treasure? Putting aside the fact that Hank had an affair, even if he didn¡¯t do anything wrong, my sister will never go back since she divorced.¡± A good horse never goes back to the same pasture. Her sister was most definitely a good horse. ¡°Let me tell you this, Yates. You¡¯re the one who failed to control your man. My sister didn¡¯t go to you to settle ounts when he came over to disturb her peaceful life, yet you have the nerve to find her instead. Just chop off your man¡¯s legs if you¡¯re capable of it so he can¡¯te find my sister anymore. My sister will even thank you for saving her ears.¡± Serenity¡¯s words infuriated Jessica. She knew in her heart that it was Hank who took the initiative to find Liberty. Jessica did not mince her words when she was angry. ¡°If your sister doesn¡¯t n on remarrying Hank, then what is she losing weight for? She knows that Hank divorced her because he was disgusted with her for being fat. She¡¯s losing weight because she wants to remarry him. She wants to regain her figure and seduce my man.¡± ¡°Is that supposed to be a joke? There are so many people in this world who want to lose weight. Are they all trying to seduce that scumbag man of yours? You think too highly of that scum. Only you treat him as treasure. In my sister¡¯s eyes, he¡¯s worse than dirt now. ¡°My sister can lose weight if she wants to. What has that got to do with you? Don¡¯t tell me you¡¯ve lost confidence in yourself, Ms. Yates. Didn¡¯t you think you were the most beautiful mistress in the world? What? Are you having a crisis now just because my sister lost a little weight? ¡°You¡¯re afraid my sister will be prettier than you after she loses weight, aren¡¯t you? My sister is already prettier than you!¡± Chapter 862 Chapter 862 Chapter 862 Jessica knew she was being ridiculous. Whatever she was spouting was nonsense. She was just angry. In the past, Hank used to say that he would lose his appetite when he came home and saw how fat Liberty was. After the divorce, Hank kept looking for Liberty, and Liberty kept losing weight. She had lost tens of pounds in just two months but Liberty was still a fat woman if she were to bepared to a supermodel. However, for an ordinary person, Liberty just looked slightly chubby. Jessica felt that Hank came looking for Liberty because thetter lost weight and looked much better than when she got divorced. Liberty walked over. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. When Jessica saw her, she looked at Liberty with resentment and fury, and shouted fiercely, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m not afraid just because you have a rich aunt. I¡¯m not afraid that your brother-inw is Mr. York either. I¡¯ll tear you apart if you dare seduce my husband.¡± Liberty was highly amused and said, ¡°Ms. Yates, are you feeling insecure because you stole someone else¡¯s husband? Do you always feel that someone will steal your husband from you too? ¡°Maybe there¡¯ll be someone with bad judgment like us who will like Hank and learn to be a mistress from you, but that person will never be me. I¡¯m a clean freak when ites to rtionships. If a man I threw away gets picked up by someone else, I¡¯ll think of him as dirty. I will never want him anymore. ¡°That said, I really have to thank you for picking Hank up. Thanks to you, I could divorce smoothly and obtain the assets I wanted. To repay you, I promise you that even if Hank regrets itter and wants to remarry me, I will never give him the chance.¡± Jessica said resentfully, ¡°Hank will never regret it. He loves me the most.¡± ¡°If he loves you that much, what are you still afraid of?¡± That certainly stumped Jessica. Hank loved her, but after living with him and getting married, she gradually realized that marriage was not just a matter between two people. It involved two families that had nothing to do with each other. Hank learned to cook for her. When her mother-inw scolded her, he would also speak up for her and stand on her side. However, he still sometimes helped his mother. It was not possible to spoil herpletely, nor could he bepletely submissive to her like he was when they were secretly dating. Back then, all the gifts he gave her were expensive. Even the cheapest earrings cost several thousand. Nowadays, his gifts to her were merely a bouquet of flowers. Her wedding band was a golden ring, but it only weighed ten grams and cost only a few thousand dors. It could not bepared with the love shown pre-marriage at all. Did he think she was not as valuable anymore because he had finally obtained her? ¡°Why did Hanke looking for you earlier? What were you two doing while hiding in the building?¡± It was then that Liberty realized Jessica must have followed Hank. Liberty had wondered how happily this pair of scumbags could live in the future. Unexpectedly, they already lost their trust after just getting their marriage license. ¡°Hank came to see Sonny and told me some stuff. I believe you should know what he told me since you¡¯re his secretary. He can¡¯t hide from you who he has met.¡± ¡°That¡¯s it?¡± In fact, Jessica already figured out the main reason Hank came to Liberty. She was just unhappy. She did not like the fact that they still often met after the divorce. Liberty blocked Hank¡¯s number, but Olivia secretly followed Liberty and found out where she lived. Now that Hank also knew, having his number blocked by Liberty had no effect on him. If he could not call her, he coulde directly to her. This made Jessica even angrier. Chapter 863 Chapter 863 Chapter 863 ¡°Ms. Yates, you can go back and question your husband if you don¡¯t believe it. Why are you here to question my sister instead? You need to get this into your head. It was your husband who came to my sister, not the other way around.¡± Serenity could not help but add, ¡°If you¡¯re that insecure, cut off your husband¡¯s legs to make sure he can only stay by your side in the future.¡± ¡°Move out, Liberty. Move far away from here and don¡¯t let my mother-inw find out. That way, Hank won¡¯te to see you.¡± Jessica ignored Serenity¡¯s mockery. Right now, the person she was most jealous of was Serenity. She was prettier and younger than Serenity, but it was Serenity who married Mr. York. Serenity¡¯s life was too good to be true. Just what did Mr. York see in her? It was not just Jessica who had those thoughts. Many people did not understand what it was about Serenity that moved Mr. York¡¯s heart and how she became his most beloved. Before Liberty could say anything, Serenity got furious and said, ¡°Why should my sister move out? If anyone should leave, it should be you guys. Aren¡¯t you afraid that Hank wille looking for my sister? In that case, you¡¯d better move far away and leave Wiltspoon. That way, he won¡¯te back. ¡°I¡¯ll throw your own words back at you, Yates. If you can¡¯t manage your man, don¡¯t me external temptations for being too much. This is what homewreckers like you would say. ¡°Hurry up and get lost. I want to ssh a basin of water on you to wash your brain when I see you.¡± Serenity mmed the door shut and said to her sister, ¡°Thank goodness you divorced Hank. Otherwise, your blood pressure might go off the charts from anger.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not worth getting angry at her. The angrier we are, the more she¡¯ll pop up, and she¡¯ll actually think that I still have feelings for Hank. She¡¯lle over more often to show off her sense of superiority as the victor.¡± Liberty now felt nothing but calm when it came to dealing with people like Jessica. ¡°I was in a bad mood, but she came knocking and let me scold her. I feel much better. I¡¯m hungry now. I want an extra serving.¡± Libertyughed. ¡°Eat more then.¡± The sisters sat back down at the table to eat. Serenity¡¯s cell phone rang. It was a video call from Zachary. She did not want to take it, but on second thought, she answered anyway. Although she epted the video call, she did not say anything. ¡°Have you eaten, Seren?¡± Serenity kept mum and simply raised her bowl. Zachary understood she was in the middle of eating. ¡°Why can¡¯t I see you, Seren? Is your phone broken? I¡¯ll send you a new phone tomorrow.¡± Serenity remained silent, but she picked up the phone and held it facing Sonny so that Zachary could see him. Zachary saw him eating with gravy coating his lips. ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± Sonny waved happily at Zachary in the video, took another bite, and said, ¡°Uncle Zack, I¡¯m eating now. Aunt Seren¡¯s cooking is really yummy.¡± Zachary spat in his heart, ¡®There¡¯s no lie in that, little guy. Unfortunately, I can¡¯t eat it now. You¡¯re so lucky.¡¯ His heart was incredibly bitter, but he smiled and coaxed the little one. ¡°Can you share a little bit with Uncle Zack?¡± ¡°Uncle Zack can¡¯t eat it.¡± ¡°Why not?¡± Sonny answered very seriously, ¡°Because Uncle Zack is inside the phone now.¡± Zacharyughed. Even Serenity smiled. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. The little one was quite good at talking. ¡°Sonny, can you let Uncle Zack see your Aunt Seren?¡± Serenity was speechless. He was using Sonny. However, Sonny looked at Serenity in confusion and said to Zachary, ¡°Aunt Seren is right there.¡± He pointed at Serenity. He could see his aunt. Why could Uncle Zack not see her? For a moment, Zachary did not know how to exin it to a three-year-old child. Chapter 864 Chapter 864 Chapter 864 Serenity hung up the video call. Zachary muttered, ¡°She won¡¯t even let me see Sonny.¡± If he had known, he would have kept teasing Sonny. That way, he could let Serenity hear his voice. Liberty looked at her sister but remained silent. She did not ask a single question since she brought her sister home. Serenity would naturally talk to her when she wanted to. When she saw her son¡¯s mouth covered in gravy, sheughed and wiped the gravy from his face. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Serenity wanted to go out after dinner. ¡°Where are you going?¡± Liberty asked while washing the dishes. ¡°I just want to go out for some air. I¡¯ll use your e-bike.¡± ¡°Stay close. The battery might notst. If you go too far and run out of battery, you¡¯ll have to push the bike the rest of the way. Put on a jacket. It¡¯s windy outside.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t ask Jasmine out for drinks. Zachary is worried about you, and I promised him I won¡¯t let you drive recklessly or go drinking.¡± Serenity¡¯s mood soured again at the mention of Zachary¡¯s name. She was angry at him, but she could not get him out of her mind. She was reminded of him in everything she did. She grumbled, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m your real sister, but you¡¯re helping him to control me.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not helping anyone. I¡¯m putting your safety first. You drive like a racer when you¡¯re in a bad mood, and you¡¯re prone to idents. You go drinking, but you can¡¯t hold your liquor and get wasted with just two sses. Then, you¡¯ll wake up the next day crying about your headache.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°I wanna go, Aunt Seren.¡± The little ankle-biter immediately ran over and wrapped his arms around Serenity¡¯s leg when he heard that she wanted to go out for a ride. Serenity picked up her nephew, brought a child seat for the electric bike, and said to her sister, ¡°I¡¯ll take Sonny out for a fewps outside.¡± ¡°Be careful. Put Sonny¡¯s hood on. His jacket has a hood.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Serenity carried her nephew out. Unexpectedly, when she was pushing the e-bike out, she saw Zachary wandering in front of the building. Serenity did not let him see her during the video call as she did not want to look at him, so she did not notice his background during the call. She did not expect him to be at the entrance. How long had he been there? Serenity looked at Zachary and saw that he was wearing a jacket to keep warm. She picked up her nephew, ced him on the child seat, and put on a kid¡¯s helmet for him. She put on a helmet for herself too before riding the e-bike away from where Zachary was standing. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary called out. Serenity did not turn around, let alone answer him. Zachary jogged after them for a few dozen meters, but Serenity elerated, so he could not catch up. After stopping, he immediately called Jim and said, ¡°Go buy me an e-bike and send it to Liberty¡¯s ce. I¡¯ll apany Seren the next time she goes on a ride.¡± Whether it was a two- or four-wheeled vehicle, he would apany her. Even if she did not pay attention to him, he would be relieved if he could follow her from afar and look at her. Jim understood. He immediately went to buy an e-bike. In any case, Zachary rode all kinds of transportation with Serenity in the months he concealed his identity. Chapter 865 Chapter 865 Chapter 865 Serenity and Sonny made twops nearby and she ended up bringing Sonny to a nearby supermarket. They went home with a full load of snacks and a carton of milk. Serenity stopped the e-bike in front of Liberty¡¯s block. She instinctively looked around but did not spot Zachary. She was relieved yet had mixed feelings. ¡°Get down first, Sonny. I¡¯ll push the bike into the garage and lock it up.¡± There was a public garage on the first floor for the tenants here to park their vehicles. Serenity first lowered her nephew from the e-bike, then ced the snacks and the carton of milk she bought beside him. The little guy thought his aunt bought all these snacks for him, so he immediately squatted next to the bag and grabbed it with one hand while another was on the carton of milk. It was obvious he was trying to protect the food. ¡°Sonny.¡± A familiar voice rang out. Sonny turned his head and saw Zachary standing behind him. He immediately stood up and called out happily, ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± Then, he raised his arms to let Zachary hold him. Serenity had just pushed the e-bike into the garage when she heard Zachary¡¯s voice. She instinctively turned her head to look at him and saw him picking Serenity up. With a split second of distraction, she pushed her e-bike and identally collided with a motorbike next to it. The motorbike fell to the other side, and the e-bike tilted with it. Serenity lost her bnce and fell on the e-bike. ¡°Seren!¡± Zachary cried out and immediately set Sonny down after he had just picked him up to run over to the garage. ¡°Seren, are you okay? Did you scrape yourself? Let me see.¡± Zachary pulled Serenity up and hurriedly checked her body for bruises. ¡°Thank you for your concern, Mr. York. I¡¯m fine.¡± Serenity pushed away hisrge hands examining her and thanked him indifferently. Then, she went to pick up the bikes. Zachary heard the distant form of address and looked at her cold expression. The way she talked to him hurt more than when she ignored him. ¡°Seren.¡± Serenity stared at him. Cat got Zachary¡¯s tongue when she looked at him like that. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I-I¡¯ll help you get the bikes. Stand back.¡± Zachary sighed in his heart. Like Josh said, what he had to do now was make Serenity trust him again. ¡°Thanks, but no thanks. I can do it by myself.¡± Zachary¡¯s heart felt stuffy. She was always like this. She did not even give him the chance to help her. After refusing his help, Serenity straightened the e-bike by herself, and then the motorbike she knocked over. She noticed the side mirror of the motorbike was broken and wanted topensate the owner, but she did not know who it belonged 1. After thinking about it, she took out her phone and called her sister. When Liberty picked up, she said, ¡°Liberty, please bring me a pen and paper. I knocked over someone else¡¯s motorbike when I was pushing the e-bike into the garage. One of the side mirrors broke, but I don¡¯t know who the bike owner is. I want to leave a note for them.¡± ¡°All right.¡± Liberty did not scold Serenity and soon came down with a pen and a piece of paper. She was not surprised when she saw Zachary standing in the garage like an ice statue. With his character, even if he could let Serenity go ande home with her, he could not stand by and just leave Serenity. Had he been standing there the entire time? Liberty nced at her brother-inw. Zachary understood what that look meant and groaned in a low voice, ¡°Seren won¡¯t let me help her.¡± Liberty was speechless. Serenity refused his help, so he decided to stand there like an ice statue and take up space? ¡°Here, Seren.¡± Liberty handed the pen and paper to her sister. She then shot Zachary a look and gestured for him to follow her out of the garage. Chapter 866 Chapter 866 Chapter 866 After struggling to take his eyes off Serenity, Zachary quietly followed his sister-in- Grabbing the paper and pen, Serenity wrote an apology and left her name and phone number so she could discuss repairs when the person got in touch. Seeing the anti-theft lock was unused, Serenity put the note on the pedal and mped it down with the lock. Once she had done that, Serenity walked out of the parking garage. She saw her sister and nephew, but Zachary was nowhere to be found. ¡°Liberty, is he gone?¡± ¡°You bought a lot of stuff. Zachary volunteered to move them upstairs for you.¡± Pursing her lips, Serenity said nothing more. ¡°You said you were just going out for a ride, but you ended up in a supermarket. I can¡¯t leave you and Sonny in the supermarket. You shop until you drop.¡± With her son in her arms, Liberty chatted with her sister while climbing up the stairs. ¡°Retail therapy is the best when you¡¯re feeling down. You¡¯lle out of the store feeling new.¡± Liberty burst intoughter. ¡°You and Sonny are just there for the snacks. You just don¡¯t want to admit it.¡± By the time the sisters made it upstairs, the door was wide open. Zachary was waiting for them at the door. ¡°I put away the things, Liberty.¡± Zachary was talking to Liberty, but his eyes were glued to Serenity. ¡°Thank you, Zachary.¡± Zachary immediately replied, ¡°Call me if you ever need help with any heavy lifting. I¡¯ll be there.¡± Liberty responded with a smile, ¡°There¡¯s not a lot of heavybor. It¡¯s cold outside today. Don¡¯t just stand there. Come in and enjoy a hot drink before you leave.¡± Zachary looked at Serenity, waiting for her to say something. Liberty carried her son into the house. Serenity followed right behind her, looking straight ahead while brushing past Zachary. She stepped into the house and entered the kitchen. Standing there, Zachary was overwhelmed with a feeling of disappointment. Serenity did not invite him into the house for a hot beverage. Serenity soon emerged from the kitchen with a ss in hand. The ss was filled with hot piping water. She carried the ss of water out and put it down on the coffee table. It was boiling! Serenity then said to her sister, ¡°I¡¯m going to go and get some rest, Liberty. I have work tomorrow.¡± Turning on her heel, she went into her room without so much as giving Zachary a look. Once Serenity shut the door behind her, Liberty turned to the spaced-out man.¡± Zachary, Seren poured you a drink. Why don¡¯t youe in for a drink to warm up?¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Snapping out of his thoughts, Zachary quickly came in. He turned his head in the direction of Serenity¡¯s room. Liberty said, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t bother if I were you. You won¡¯t be living together with your wife any time soon.¡± Zachary could not get used to the idea. It took him some time toe to terms with sharing a bed with someone. Now that he had adapted to wrapping his arms around his wife at night, Zachary was bound to have sleepless nights due to the sudden change of sleeping arrangements. The nights were long. Left alone in an empty bedroom, Zachary could only findpanionship with his pillow. Zachary took a seat on the couch. Since Sonny had always been fond of Zachary, he slipped out of his mother¡¯s embrace and climbed up Zachary¡¯sp. Sonny sat down on Zachary¡¯sp. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± ¡°Sonny.¡± Zachary held the little guy with one hand and picked up the ss of water with the other. It did not take long before Zachary put down the ss. It was scalding! Chapter 867 Chapter 867 Chapter 867 It crossed Zachary¡¯s mind that Serenity personally brought the ss out of the kitchen. She did not break the ss even though the drink was piping hot. The water must be to warm him up. Serenity was angry and gave him the snub, still refusing to forgive him. Nevertheless, her tiny gestures told Zachary that Serenity was not as heartless as she put herself out to be. With that in mind, Zachary felt a little better. As Sonny leaned forward, Zachary immediately moved the ss aside before hot water was knocked over. Sonny wanted to open the bag of snacks. Zachary pulled the bag over and opened it for him. ¡°Thank you, Uncle Zack.¡± Grabbing a pack of chips from the grocery bag, Sonny gave it to Zachary and said, ¡± This is for you, Uncle Zack. Aunt Ser said it¡¯s tasty.¡± Aunt Ser rarely bought him chips, stating that too much junk food was not good for him. Why did Aunt Ser always help herself to a bag then? After Zachary took the bag of chips, Sonny dug out a few more bags and gave them to Zachary. The little boy then slid down from Zachary¡¯sp and carried the grocery bag with the remaining snacks with a struggle, saying, ¡°This is all mine.¡± Liberty amusedly took the bag from her son and uttered, ¡°The bag is heavier than you. Put the bag here. You can¡¯t have any tonight, but you can have some tomorrow. You¡¯ll spoil your dinner if you have them all at once.¡± She then turned to Zachary. ¡°Sonny doesn¡¯t share. There¡¯s the asional exception with a few kids, but not with adults though.¡± Zachary had always kept a straight face while interacting with Sonny right from the start. However, Sonny was not afraid of him. In fact, the little man got along well with Zachary. Despite meeting Duncan multiple times, Sonny still could not look Duncan in the eye. There was something about human rtions that was hard to fathom. Zacharyid out the few bags he got from Sonny and replied, ¡°Sonny, I don¡¯t really like to eat snacks. You can have them back.¡± Sonny grabbed the junk food and stuffed it back into the grocery bag. It made Zacharyugh. Sonny climbed back into his mother¡¯s arms. Soon, his young body gave in to weariness as Sonny dozed off in his mother¡¯s embrace. Zachary did not want to leave, but since Sonny was asleep and his wife was holed up in the room, it was a bit awkward for him and his sister¨Cinw to sit there in silence. He finished the drink, got up, and said, ¡°I got to go, Liberty.¡± All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. ¡°Sure. Be safe on the road.¡± Liberty rose to her feet while carrying her son to see Zachary off. He walked on, telling Liberty that she did not have to. Although he kept his attention on Serenity¡¯s bedroom door, his hopes were dashed when the door remained shut and kept the beautiful figure from coming out. Zachary sighed. He felt their fight had gone on for a long time, but it had only been a couple of days. It had been rough for sure. Zachary did not return to his ce at Regent Residences. Instead, he went to Brynfield where he had stayed with Zachary since they signed the marriage papers. The couple spent many of their moments here. He pushed open the door to a house of darkness. Standing outside the door, Zachary was brought back to the day they got married. He came home the first night to find Serenity had locked him out. He had forgotten he had a wife while it slipped her mind she had a husband too. It was a marriage of convenience back then, and the couple was cordial, if not distant, with one another. Now that Zachary thought about it, those moments were near and dear to him. Chapter 868 Chapter 868 Chapter 868 Struck by a thought, Zachary flipped the lights on and hurried to Serenity¡¯s bedroom. He flung the door open and looked at the unchanged d¨¦cor. Her things were still around. He examined her closet and found a few pieces of clothing missing. Her suitcase was still beside the wardrobe. She did not take all her things with her. Zachary sighed heavily with relief. He was so afraid of losing someone for the first time ever. Sitting on Serenity¡¯s bed, Zachary brushed his fingers along her sheets as if he could feel her through her belongings. ¡°Seren¡­¡± He murmured her name. ¡°I¡¯ll prove to you through my actions that you won¡¯t hear another lie from me again! This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You can ignore me for a year if I ever do anything to deceive or hurt you. Um¡­ year¡¯s a bit long. Maybe three months.¡± A After much thought, Zachary believed he would go crazy from three months of no interaction with Serenity. He mumbled to himself, ¡°I think a week is fine. I lost my mind when you didn¡¯t talk to me for a day. A week would push me over the edge. I think it¡¯s a hard enough punishment.¡± Serenity would be speechless if she were there now. Zachary stayed in her room for a while before going out to close the main door. He did not lock the house in case Serenity woke up in the middle of the night from the cold and missed his warm embrace. She might juste running home to him. Of course, it was all wishful thinking and could hardly be a reality. Even if Serenity was willing to talk to him, their rtionship could not possibly go back to where it once was right away. That night, Zachary slept in Serenity¡¯s bedroom. It was a quiet night. The following morning, Serenity got up early to make her sister and nephew breakfast just like when she was still staying with her sister. After breakfast, Serenity grabbed her car keys and phone and went out the door. She had to return to the shop today and rush her orders out. Her clients were already asking for updates. Heartbreak was no big deal. It could note in the way of her making money. A day was good enough for her to let out all her bad feelings. Since it was early, traffic was pretty decent. Serenity brisked through traffic all the way to Wiltspoon School. Pulling up outside the shop, Serenity got out of the car and saw Mr. Charles standing outside his shop with a te in hand. He greeted her with a wave and a smile. ¡°Morning, Mr. Charles. Having breakfast, are you?¡± ¡°Good morning, Serenity. I just had mine. Have you had yours?¡± ¡°I came after breakfast. I thought you¡¯d only open for business on the first day of school.¡± Mr. Charles replied with a grin, ¡°The school term starts the day after tomorrow. We came early to tidy up the ce and prepare for the students¡® return.¡± Still holding the te, Mr. Charles drew close and added, ¡°I thought you¡¯d be close for business.¡± Mr. Charles and the rest of the neighbors were aware that Serenity was Mrs. York. Mr. Charles even told his wife smugly, ¡°I told you Serenity is destined for riches and will move up in life, but you said I was full of baloney.¡± Unable to stand her husband¡¯s gloating, Mrs. Charles snapped back, ¡°Why don¡¯t you tell my fortune if you¡¯re so good at it? When will I hit the jackpot and get a new husband? ¡°You might as well be a fortune teller or psychic. I bet business will be booming, better than our shop here.¡± Mr. Charles replied hesitantly, ¡°It¡¯s just a hobby.¡± Anyway, he was right about Serenity. He would be entitled to bragging rights for a long time. Even Jasmine would wee a life of wealth and privilege. However, her family was well¨Coff, to begin with, so there was not much of a reversal of fortune for her, unlike Serenity who went from rags to riches. Chapter 869 Chapter 869 Chapter 869 Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Of course, we¡¯ll be open for business.¡± ¡°They said you¡¯ll sell the business and take it easy with life when we found out you were the missus of the York family. They also said they are willing to buy your business no matter the cost because of the good energy in your shop.¡± Mr. Charles added amid chuckles, ¡°The ce only has good energy because you¡¯re there.¡± Did these people think they would marry up like Serenity just by taking over her shop? Nevertheless, it was not a bad idea to buy Serenity¡¯s business. He could advertise saying that the shop once belonged to Mrs. York. ¡°I¡¯m still the same me, Mr. Charles. Jasmine and I put a lot of hard work into the shop. I can¡¯t just give up on the shop after running it for so many years.¡± ¡°I heard that the wives of wealthy families can¡¯t work. Does Mr. York allow you to work?¡± Mr. Charles was in the mood for some gossip. Serenity kept quiet for a while before answering, ¡°I¡¯m a free person, Mr. Charles.¡± Zachary had her fooled for more than four months, and his whole family was in on it too. The lies would have begun to show their cracks if Serenity was not permitted to work. The women were probably allowed to work in the York family. Although Serenity was upset that Zachary lied to her, she had to admit that the Yorks were well¨C cultured. It dawned on her now that they were the blueblood through and through. Their manners and bearings were bred in the bones, not something an ordinary person could pick up. Serenity finally understood why her mother¨Cinw suggested that she took a ss in etiquette. The Yorks were a family of high social standing. The social gap put a lot of pressure on Serenity. Mr. Charles said with a smile, ¡°That¡¯s what I said, but they wanted to bet on it. I¡¯ll put in my wager and bet that you will still be open for business. They believe you¡¯ll sell the business now that you have a rich husband. Apparently, you don¡¯t need to work since you have the money.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°You should bet big then.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll put all my secret savings on it. Don¡¯t tell my wife that I have extra cash stashed away, Serenity. Oh, are you going to bet too?¡± Serenity answered, ¡°It doesn¡¯t seem fair to them if I bet on myself.¡± Even if she wanted to sell the business, Serenity would hang on just to win the bet. Besides, it was not as though her shop was not making money. There was no way she was going to give up on her business unless thendlord ceased to rent the space, but that was something out of Serenity¡¯s hands. ¡°Haha. You¡¯re right. Don¡¯t ce a wager. It¡¯s not good to be greedy. I can win some money if I bet all my savings on it. I¡¯ll buy you a meal.¡± ¡°Is there a time frame for the bet?¡± ¡°Of course. It¡¯s a month.¡± Serenity replied with a grin, ¡°You¡¯ll win for sure.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°It¡¯ll be all thanks to you. That¡¯s what they get for arguing with me and doubting me. I¡¯m a good fortune teller, you know. Hahaha.¡± Mr. Charles walked away with a spring in his step. Serenity was caught between tears andughter. Fortune teller? Mr. Charles was so happy it looked as though he would be winning a house from the bet. Serenity opened the side entrance to get into the shop before utching the main entrance. The fresh air whisked into the shop, clearing the stuffiness out of the room. It did not take long for the sunlight to rece the mustiness. Out of habit, she started moving the disy racks out of the shop. ¡°Seren.¡± Riding on her e¨Cbike, Jasmine approached and saw Serenity out and about. She parked her ride and remarked with a smile, ¡°I thought you¡¯d take a few days off.¡± Serenity responded, ¡°I can¡¯t say no to making a buck.¡± Chapter 870 Chapter 870 Chapter 870 Jasmine smiled. ¡°Now this is the Serenity I know.¡± After parking her bike, Jasmine went to move the disy racks out with Serenity. ¡°Did Mr. York bother you afterward?¡± Jasmine asked with concern. While dusting off the racks, Serenity replied, ¡°Do you think he would let me breathe and cool down for a few days?¡± ¡°Nope.¡± Jasmine added, ¡°Just turn a blind eye so long as he doesn¡¯t cross the line by knocking you out and putting you under house arrest likest time. Mr. York is distressed and scared to lose you.¡± Serenity was without a word. Seeing that Serenity was not in the mood for a rtionship chat, Jasmine took the hint and stopped diving into the topic. ¡°Ah, the shop¡¯s finally open. Serenity. Serenity.¡± The voice from the door was one to dig under Serenity¡¯s skin. Old Mr. Hunt, leading his group of sons and grandsons, walked not the shop with big smiles. ¡°Serenity.¡± Old Mr. Hunt beamed, looking at Serenity as if she was a goldmine. Man, he was blinded by the shimmering gold. It never urred to him that his granddaughter would be so lucky. Serenity was a nobody, and all she had was her sister. Yet, the girl managed to bag herself a rich husband. What a lucky girl! These were the Yorks, the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon! His grandson told him that the Yorks were worth billions. Billions! Old Mr. Hunt had to use a calctor to make out exactly how many zeros there were. With his son and grandson egging him on, Old Mr. Hunt could not keep it together anymore. He and his offspring made haste to the city to demand money from Serenity. Um¡­ Hang on. It was to reunite with his granddaughter. Of course, it would be better if the reconciliation came with money as well. Serenity could leave him crumbs, and it would be enough for Old Mr. Hunt to livefortably until the day he died. ¡°Mike, John, bring in the local produce for Serenity.¡± Old Mr. Hunt happily told his grandson before turning to Serenity. ¡°I brought you some local produce, Serenity. Don¡¯t think of it as tacky. It tastes like home. It¡¯s your parents¡® favorite food when they were still around.¡± Serenity furrowed her brows. Hank alerted her sisterst night that the money¨Chungry wolves were in town. Serenity thought their first pitstop would be York Corporation to look for Zachary. Knowing her granddad, Serenity imagined Old Mr. Hunt would rush to y the part of a grandfather to the heir of the Yorks. ¡°Thanks, but I can get my own food if I want it,¡± Serenity faintly responded as she approached with a duster. Old Mr. Hunt went on to sit down behind the cash register. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity whacked the duster on the table, scaring the old man. Observing the look on Serenity¡¯s face, Old Mr. Hunt reluctantly came out from behind the cash register and pulled a chair to sit. He said to Serenity, ¡°Your grandmom is doing well, Serenity. I don¡¯t need to be with her 24/7. I¡¯ll work the cash register for you. I¡¯m old, so I can¡¯t help with the heavy stuff, but I can handle the money. ¡°That reminds me. Your uncles, cousins, and I haven¡¯t had breakfast since we rushed over. Is there anything to eat in your shop? Can you make us something, or at least order us some takeaway?¡± ¡°Granddad, I ordered takeaway. The delivery should arrive any minute,¡± John chimed in. Granddad was used to ordering Serenity around, but thetter was now the wife of a wealthy heir. Since they had not buried the hatchet, there was no way Serenity was going to cook for them. Chapter 871 Chapter 871 Chapter 871 Old Mr. Hunt said, ¡°Fine, takeaway food it is. Serenity, don¡¯t forget to pay the manter.¡± Serenity wanted tough. Leopards sure could not change their spots. These people were always trying to milk her in every way possible. She coldly blurted, ¡°You order, you pay.¡± Serenity took a nce at the local produce John and Mike hoisted into the shop. Since the sacks were not sealed, she could see they were a bag of sweet potato and a sack of yam. Old Mr. Hunt thought he could handle the money of her business with two sacks of produce. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. She could not make this stuff up. Only her granddad would do such a thing. ¡°Let bygones be bygones, Serenity. We have put the matter behind us. Don¡¯t hold grudges. I¡¯m your granddad no matter what. We¡¯re more than willing to make it up to you and even make a public apology online. ¡°I told John to draw up an apology, and it will soon be published online. ¡°Now that all the misunderstandings are cleared up, we¡¯re still one big happy family. You made it big. Your husband¡¯s family is wealthy. I¡¯m talking billions! Tell your husband to stop his open fire at your uncles and cousins. Leave them to run their businesses and work. ¡°John was a top executive in apany, making up a million a year, but he lost his job because of you. By right, you shouldpensate for his loss of ie, but since you¡¯re cousins, we can forget about thepensation. Just give your cousin back his old job. ¡°You¡¯re rich now. What¡¯s breakfast going to cost you? Don¡¯t be so stingy and fuss over every single detail. That reminds me, where¡¯s my grandson¨Cinw? I knew he was the finest, the best of the best when I first met him. ¡°Haha. You have good taste in men, Serenity. I heard your husband has eight younger cousins and brothers. Can you help set your cousin sisters up with them? I can die happy, knowing they would be well taken care of by the York family.¡± Serenity and Jasmine were lost for words. The pair knew the Hunts were something else and wacky, but this statement took the cake. Every time they thought the Hunts could not go any lower, the Hunts always seemed to outdo themselves. ¡°Old Mr. Hunt, do you think just anybody can marry into the York family?¡± Jasmine jumped in to give her sarcastic two cents. The old man was a dreamer for sure. To think he tried to get the Yorks¡®st name attached to all his granddaughters. It was unimaginable even to Jasmine. Old Mr. Hunt spoke in a matter¨Cof¨Cfact manner. ¡°Serenity is an orphan, and she could marry into the York family. My other granddaughters have both parents around ande from good families. They¡¯re no lesser than Serenity, so why can¡¯t they marry into the York family?¡± ¡°Serenity, your granddad¡¯s right. Family should alwayse first and stick together. Hook your cousins up so they can marry into the York family. Your position as thedy of the house will be secured with them around to help you. No one will be the boss of you.¡± One of Serenity¡¯s uncles had a daughter who was younger than Serenity by two years. She was still single. The uncle¡¯s eyes lit up at the opportunity of marrying his daughter into money. In the past, the Hunts believed marriage with the rich and powerful was out of reach. It was not like they had seen the upper crust up close and personal before. Now that a nobody like Serenity became the wife of the wealthiest man in the city, they thought marrying up was not that hard after all. They began to fancy themselves in Serenity¡¯s position. Their niece married a rich husband, but she might not help them since they were not on good terms. However, it was a different story if their daughters were the ones with wealthy husbands. Surely, their daughters would help out the family financially. The Hunts might join high society in a few years with the York family taking them under their wing. The Hunts would go on and tell people that they were rted to Mrs. York, and the envious looks the Hunts got from the public fed into their ego. s, the Hunts were too blind to tell apart envy from cynicism. Chapter 872 Chapter 872 Chapter 872 It was no secret to the whole of Wiltspoon what the Hunts had done to Serenity and her sister. The Hunts put on airs and walked around town as the inws to the Yorks now that they realized Zachary was Mr. York. The Hunts took shamelessness to a whole new level. ¡°You must be kidding. The door¡¯s right there. Get out right now!¡± Annoyed by their brazenness, Serenity did not want to waste her manners on them and showed them the door. John and the others fell back, but they only kept one foot out of the door. They were counting on Old Mr. Hunt to face Serenity solo. Since the old man was a senior, Serenity would not resort to violence no matter how angry she was. ¡°Serenity!¡± Scowling, Old Mr. Hunt shouted Serenity¡¯s name and waited until he got Serenity¡¯s full attention before uttering, ¡°We can leave but not before I get a million bucks. I can go back and look after your grandmom. I¡¯ll take them to cause a scene at your husband¡¯s office if you don¡¯t give me the money. ¡°Without the money, I¡¯ll make sure to embarrass you and make you aughingstock so you¡¯ll never live it down with your inws.¡± Serenity turned on her heel to grab the broom. With Serenity ready to pick a fight, John and the rest scrambled out of the shop. Still, Old Mr. Hunt held his ground, thinking that Serenity would noty a finger on him. It would be better if Serenity hit him as he could demand more money. Serenity did not hit him. Putting the broom down, she turned around and walked away. It was a triumphant win for Old Mr. Hunt. Whatever the reason, it was wrong to inflict physical harm on a senior, especially when he was just sitting there. Serenity could not y rough with a shameless old man like Old Mr. Hunt, so she went into the loo and filled a bucket of water. She carried the bucket and sshed the water on Old Mr. Hunt. Old Mr. Hunt was taken aback by the surprise attack. The water came gushing down his head, drenching him from head to toe. The Hunts were dumbfounded. That was cold, even for Serenity! She did not whack the old man, but she poured water all over him. ¡°Serenity!¡± Old Mr. Hunt wiped the water off his face, feeling his authority as the head of the household challenged. Blowing his top, he cussed Serenity and her forefathers out with a finger up her nose. Serenity remarked snarkily, ¡°Aren¡¯t my forefathers yours too? Aren¡¯t you afraid your father¡¯s father mighte back from the grave to haunt you?¡± Old Mr. Hunt choked. ¡°The day you took my parents¡® blood money, kicked me and my sister out, and denied us the visit to our parents¡® grave was when you were no longer my granddad. So don¡¯t try to act like one now. ¡°You won¡¯t get a penny out of me. You¡¯re wee to take my life though, but that¡¯s if you dare.¡± All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. With an ashen face, Old Mr. Hunt pointed his finger shakily at Serenity. The anger overtook his every being. Why did he have an unforgiving granddaughter like Serenity? Chapter 873 Chapter 873 Chapter 873 ¡°Just you wait. I¡¯ll kick up a fuss at your husband¡¯s office and demand that he forks out the money. Otherwise, I¡¯ll ask your inws instead. You won¡¯t be able to show face there. Your inws will find you an eyesore and kick you out!¡± threatened Old Mr. Hunt. your That was what he intended to do. Prior toing, his grandsons showed him the ropes in case Serenity and Liberty hated their guts too much to pay up. Now that Serenity was Mrs. York, she must want to keep up with her appearance more than ever. Serenity would pay them hush money for the sake of her inws¡® reputation if they brazenly cause a commotion. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. The Hunts could make a racket at Zachary¡¯s office or the Yorks¡® family home if Serenity refused to give them money. Serenity was not on good terms with them, but it did not change the fact that they were family. Their existence would be an embarrassment to Serenity regardless. Serenity was unlikely to gain a foothold since she married into the York family as a nobody. Heck, her inws probably did not like her. The Hunt¡¯s public blow¨Cup was a surefire way to make a fool out of the Yorks while intensifying the conflict between her and the Yorks. It might lead to Zachary divorcing Serenity. John suggested to Old Mr. Hunt that they test the waters with Serenity here. They coulde back for more if Serenity was willing to pay the hush money. The Yorks were wealthy anyway. The whole family could indulge in the good life for a while, and all they had to do was ask every time they were low on cash. Of course, they came prepared in the event Serenity refused to give them the money -they would go ahead and contact the press to furtively take videos of them causing amotion at York Corporation or the Yorks¡® residence and publish the videos online. They bet the Yorks would be furious, and Serenity would take the brunt of their anger. The Hunts had nothing to lose since they were without jobs anyway. They were here for the long run and would make things difficult for Serenity until she was driven out of the York family. Why should Serenity relish in her role as Mrs. York when their lives were a living hell right now? ¡°You don¡¯t have to go to my office. I¡¯m right behind you.¡± A husky and t tone was heard. Old Mr. Hunt cocked his head to see it was Zachary. His sons and grandsons appeared frightened as Zachary¡¯s security details shut them out. God knew when Zachary arrived. How much of the conversation had he overheard? Zachary always had the habit of waking up early, but now that his wife was no longer on the other side of the bed, he was up before the sun rose. He then went to his sister -inw¡¯s ce to wait for Serenity downstairs. Despite the long wait, Serenity was nowhere to be found. It was not until his sister¨Cin-w emerged together with Sonny that Zachary realized Serenity was already at the shop. Hence, he quickly made his way to Wiltspoon School. While on the way, he bought a bouquet of roses from a florist. As he was approaching, Zachary noticed the few cars parked outside the shop. There was a crowd standing at the door. Thanks to his keen eyes and good memory, Zachary was able to identify the lot from afar. It was the money¨Chungry Hunt family. His mother brought the Hunts up yesterday, worried that the family woulde to demand money from Serenity after finding out who he was. It never urred to him that this absurd family came first thing in the morning to harass his wife. There were no boundaries to Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s crudeness. Were Serenity and her sister not Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s granddaughters? Why was the old man always trying to bleed the sisters dry? Serenity would never turn her back on Old Mr. Hunt if he asked nicely and was drowning under the high cost of living. At least, she would offer a bit to cover the living expenses. Nevertheless, the Hunts were doing well. Sure, Zachary had driven them out of business and caused their job losses, but the Hunts had put away a lot of money in the bank. Their savings were enough to carry them through the years even if they were booted out of their careers. Yet, all they wanted was to mooch off Serenity and Liberty as if the girls were not family, or worse, people. Chapter 874 Chapter 874 Chapter 874 The Hunts treated the sisters more like enemies than families. ¡°Here you are, my good grandson¨Cinw. Hurry up and do something about your wife. Serenity doesn¡¯t know her manners. Without tough love from her parents, she hasn¡¯t learned much about respect. I¡¯m sure your family¡¯s all about social graces since you¡¯re an heir. You should divorce the uncultured girl. ¡°You better keep her on a tight leash if you want to stay with her. Hit her if she refuses to listen. You need to beat her into submission. Her grandmom used to be defiant, but I gave her a beating every day until she did everything I say. ¡°Serenity drenched my clothes. You might want to give me some money to get a change of clothes.¡± The stoic air around Zachary gave Old Mr. Hunt the chills. Still, Old Mr. Hunt psyched himself up to put forth his opinion without shame. Jasmine was tempted to whack the old man. A grandfather like Old Mr. Hunt was unheard of. She had a strong reason to doubt that Serenity¡¯s father was not one of Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s own. Livid, Serenity carried the buckets into the loo and refilled them with water. With Serenity hoisting another bucket of water, was Old Mr. Hunt going to get another round of sshing? Old Mr. Hunt was only vulnerable to Serenity¡¯s water strike because he was caught off guard the first time. He tried to take cover behind Zachary. ¡°Seren, the bucket is heavy. Let me.¡± Zachary, who was aloof a minute ago, went up to carry the bucket for Serenity. He even tenderly uttered, ¡°Don¡¯t toil yourself with the heavy lifting. Just say the word, and I¡¯ll do your bidding.¡± Old Mr. Hunt was speechless. Turning on his heel, Old Mr. Hunt made a run for it. Zachary came out with a bucket of water in hand. As nimble as a deer, Old Mr. Hunt jumped into John¡¯s car. Well, John¡¯s luxurious car would guarantee a comfortable ride. That was his choice of ride whenever he took a trip. The car made him look good. His grandson¡¯s sess reflected well on Old Mr. Hunt as the grandfather. Sure, his granddaughter had married into a rich family, but she did nothing to make him proud. In fact, his granddaughter and grandson¨Cinw poured water on him. Serenity and her sister were nothing but liabilities! Old Mr. Hunt had told the midwife in private when Serenity was born that she could drown the baby in the chamber pot if it was a girl. At least then, his daughter¨Cinw, Lisa, could work on giving his son a son. His son, Scott, was not having it and threw a fit. Scott said that he would never dump his flesh and blood, be it a son or a daughter! All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Old Mr. Hunt was enraged as all he did was try to get Scott a son to carry the family name. Back then, the government was offering generous benefits to parents to raise their kids, albeit the perks were only extended to a maximum of two children. With Scott having two children already, both daughters, he had no room or financial ability to have a son. As Old Mr. Hunt suspected, Serenity was a girl. Scoff and his wife loved the daughter all the same. Daughters were liabilities. Serenity was making it big now, but she disowned her grandfather and even threw cold water at him! Old Mr. Hunt believed he should have unsparingly left Serenity to drown in the chamber pot more than twenty years ago. Now that Serenity was all grown up, she was giving him hell. Chapter 875 Chapter 875 Chapter 875 There was no justice in the world. Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s other granddaughters were rather dutiful, but the insolent granddaughter was one who bagged herself a rich husband. Seeing that Granddad had made a quick exit, John and the others had no reason to stick around. They all ran back to the cars and sped away. Zachary plonked the bucket down onto the ground, spattering water onto his pants. ¡°I dare you not to run, old man!¡± Zachary shouted at the runaway cars. He was thinking of getting his bodyguards to haul Old Mr. Hunt into the car for them to drive away if the old man would not budge. It made things a lot easier as the old man did not hang on for long and took off on his own. Serenity and Jasmine emerged from the shop. Jasmine said, ¡°Seren, are these people here to patch things up? Well, don¡¯t make peace with them even if they make a public apology online. They¡¯re jealous that things are going well for you.¡± With a long face, Serenity uttered, ¡°I have no intention of making peace with them. It¡¯s not like we can bury the hatchet and move on.¡± ¡°Is he not your grandfather? I doubt your dad is his son. No grandfather would do such a thing to their granddaughter.¡°. Serenity fell silent before saying, ¡°When my parents were still around, my mom oftenmented how my dad took after the old man the most. There¡¯s no denying they¡¯re father and son. ¡°My dad wasn¡¯t the oldest, but he wasn¡¯t the youngest either. I guess the middle child doesn¡¯t get much attention.¡± Digging into her childhood memory, Serenity remembered that her grandparents were not kind to her parents at all. Her grandparents mooched off her family and expected her parents to take care of them for every little thing. Serenity¡¯s parents did not get so much as a thank¨Cyou for doing the legwork and forking out money. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. Serenity¡¯s aunts would offer a small te of leftover turkey to Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt when it was Thanksgiving, and the old folks would not stop boasting about it all year. Apparently, their sons were devoted enough to remember them during Thanksgiving. It seemed to slip the old folks¡® minds that Serenity¡¯s family would give the best part of the turkey to them, and this did not just happen during Thanksgiving! Yet, all Serenity¡¯s family got in return was criticism! ¡°Why is he ying favorites when all of them are his children?¡± Jasmine moaned.¡± That will never happen in my family.¡± Serenity took a moment of silence beforementing, ¡°I guess some people can¡¯t love their children all the same.¡± Jasmine looked at her best friend sympathetically. She believed her best friend would have her happy¨Cever¨Cafter if she could resolve her differences with Zachary¨Ckiss and make up. It never urred to anyone that Serenity¡¯s money¨Chungry rtives wouldtch onto the sisters like a leech. They stayed on the down¨Clow for a while but came back stronger and more unscrupulous than ever. Zachary reached out and put his arm over Serenity¡¯s shoulder to offer her sce. The girl pushed his arm away and faintly uttered, ¡°Stay out of it next time, Mr. York. You¡¯re the heir of the York family. It can only damage your name if someone catches you in the act and posts your video on the web.¡± Looking deeply into her eyes, Zachary replied, ¡°What¡¯s the point of having a good reputation without you in my life? ¡°Don¡¯t be scared or feel threatened by them, Seren. I¡¯ll call the cops on them if they bring it to my workce. They can¡¯t enter the office or our home. Their intimidation tactics are nothing to me. ¡°There¡¯s always a ck sheep in the family, even in the wealthiest family.¡± No family, regardless of social ss, was saved from a few bad apples. Serenity nced at him before turning to return to the shop. Jasmine gave Zachary a look and went into the shop too. Zachary wondered if he said anything wrong. Why did they look at him and leave for the shop without a word? Zachary stood there, frozen. The bodyguards were anxious for their boss as thetter was thrown into a daze. Mr. Zachary could put on a bold face and cling onto the missus like glue. Why was 3/3 he standing there? There was a bouquet of roses waiting to be delivered. The bouquet was still in the car! On the way over, Zachary told Jim that he would stick around the shop to be with Serenity even if Serenity chased him out with a broom. Chapter 876 Chapter 876 Chapter 876 Mr. Zachary said something about putting his dignity aside to win his wife back. He seemed to care about his dignity when it came down to it though. Jim rushed into the car to grab the roses for Mr. Zachary. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Sir, these are the flowers you bought for the missus. You haven¡¯t given them to her.¡± Jim handed the bouquet to Zachary. Zachary snapped out of his thoughts. That was right. He bought Seren some roses. Grabbing the bouquet from Jim, Zachary uttered in a husky voice, ¡°I¡¯ll let Sam know to double your bonus.¡± Although over the moon, Jim remained respectful on the surface. ¡°The bonus doesn¡¯t matter to me so long as you and the missus can get back together.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll use your bonus to buy my wife some flowers then.¡± Jim was speechless. All Jim did was pledge his loyalty, but Mr. Zachary took away his doubled bonus. Everybody turned their heads away to hide theirughter. With the bouquet in hand, Zachary was about to step into the shop when he pulled his leg back. He told his security detail, ¡°Go on home. Your presence will remind Seren that I lied to her.¡± His bodyguards were the symbol of his status as Mr. York in Wiltspoon. The security team was lost for words. Without a care about his security detail¡¯s feelings, Zachary clutched onto the roses and entered the shop. Sitting behind the cash register, Serenity was busy crafting. Jasmine sat opposite Serenity, cupping her face with her hands while quietly observing her best friend. With Zachary here, Jasmine rose to her feet to give Zachary her seat. Serenity lifted her gaze to meet her eyes. Jasmine sat back down, not moving over for anyone. Uh, she nearly betrayed Serenity. ¡°Seren, these flowers are for you.¡± Zachary put his hands out to offer the bouquet. ¡°Thanks, but no thanks. Please take the flowers away. You¡¯re blocking my view.¡± Serenity¡¯s tone was t as she met Zachary¡¯s eyes. ¡°Mr. York, I told you¨Cl need some time alone.¡± Zachary looked at her in silence, still holding the flowers up. Tension ran high between the couple. Jasmine quietly scooted over together with the chair. ¡°Serenity, Jasmine, I¡¯m back. I bought you a lot of presents. Come out and help me carry them in.¡± While the couple was at a standstill, Elisa¡¯s voice echoed into the shop before her physical arrival. Color drained from Jasmine¡¯s face. Elisa mentioned that she would be back today. She came straight to the shop upon her return from her holidays. Serenity looked as though she had seen a ghost. Feeling bad, Zachary locked his grip on Serenity¡¯s hand. ¡°Serenity, Jasmine, look what I got you¡­ Zachary!¡± Elisa excitedly barged into the ce with her hands full of shopping bags. She bought whatever tickled her fancy during her travels as gifts for her best friends. Seeing that Zachary was here, Elisa had the shock of her life. Chapter 877 Chapter 877 Chapter 877 ¡°Why are you here, Zachary?¡± asked Elisa, baffled. There was no reason for a man of Zachary¡¯s status to be here. However, it was Zachary in the flesh. Unable to believe her eyes, Elisa blinked a few times before taking a closer look at the man. Sure enough, it was the Zachary she knew. Elisa¡¯s eyes widened in shock when she saw the bouquet between Zachary and Serenity. Zachary was even holding Serenity¡¯s hand. The only logical exnation that came to mind was that the man simply resembled Zachary, but he was not Zachary. All text ? N?velD(r)a''ma.Org. How could Zachary, an aloof man who never went anywhere without his security detail to keep young women away, possibly hold another woman¡¯s¡­ Ah, before she forgot, Zachary had a wife now, and his wife had his heart. It was rumored that he spoiled his wife crazy. Although Elisa had never seen his wife, she believed Zachary was the type to give his wife all the love in the world. For Zachary, it was forever once he fell in love. That was why Elisa did not find it strange that Zachary became an uxorious husband. It was a shame that she was not the woman for Zachary. It dawned on Elisa that Serenity¡¯s husband had thest name, York. Could Serenity¡¯s husband be Zachary? Once the thought registered in her head, the shopping bags slipped out of Elisa¡¯s hands without her noticing. As a multitude ofplex emotions fleeted across her face, Elisa locked her gaze on the couple. Withdrawing her hand from Zachary¡¯s grasp, Serenity got up and walked away from the cash register, but before she could do anything, Elisa took strides ahead and stood beside Zachary. She grabbed Zachary by the arm and gave him a pull so that they came face¨Cto¨Cface. Zachary shook her hand away and dusted off Elisa¡¯s invisible contact on his clothes. He curtly uttered, ¡°What do you want, Elisa? Stay away from me!¡± ck in the face, Elisa coldly scoffed. ¡°You¡¯re one to ask, Zachary. I should be asking you that. What are you doing here?¡± She was fuming more than Zachary. Serenity jumped in to exin, ¡°We didn¡¯t mean to keep the truth from you, Elisa. I only found out about who he is.¡± Had Serenity known that Zachary was the heir Elisa had been in love with for years and initiated an overt courtship, Serenity would have never married Zachary. ¡°I know,¡± Elisa answered. Elisa turned her attention to Serenity and added, ¡°You wouldn¡¯t have given me ideas to go after him if you knew your husband was Mr. York. No wife would help her love rival chase her husband.¡± Serenity was not the type to fight over a man with another woman. Elisa knew Serenity well. Serenity adopted a realistic mindset toward love, probably because she was past the age of believing in fairytales. Serenity began to develop feelings for her husband after the marriage. Their rtionship grew steady after the couple spent time together. It took time to know about one another and get used to each other¡¯s presence after all. Elisa criticized Zachary, ¡°I can¡¯t believe you lied to Seren for a long time, Zachary. No wonder I never saw you around when I came over. It exins why you couldn¡¯t visit my family house with Seren. You have never been honest with Seren! Here I was, wondering how you were always one step ahead of me when I took Seren¡¯s advice to go after you. You had already known about the n. ¡°You knew Seren and I are best friends. I bet you got the kick out of making me and Seren fools when she gave me ideas to chase you. You could¡¯ve said something. Even if I was dying to have your love, I would¡¯ve stopped harassing you. ¡°You kept your marriage with Seren a secret while ying it cool and enjoying the courtship. Sure, you never responded to my feelings. You didn¡¯t even let me into your office building. It was all one¨Csided. You were unmarried, and I was single. Even if my love was unrequited, I didn¡¯t feel embarrassed. ¡°Everybody has the right to go after their happiness, but you made me the other woman in my cousin¡¯s marriage. It¡¯s not like you¡¯re the only one for me.¡± Chapter 878 Chapter 878 Chapter 878 ¡°Seren, what kind of cock and bull story does he give you? Has he been stringing you along that he was just a sryman?¡± Serenity thought Elisa would be livid and cut ties with her the moment thetter found out that Zachary was Mr. York. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. When faced with the truth, Elisa was fuming but the anger was targeted at Zachary for deceiving both parties. Elisa would have quit on him if Zachary had told her he was married right off the bat. Nevertheless, Zachary kept his mouth shut, leading Elisa on that he was single. Elisa was all over him and somewhat became the homewrecker in someone¡¯s marriage. Out of all people, it had to be the marriage of the cousin she hit it off with. ¡°When did you get your marriage license, Seren?¡± Elisa suddenly asked. Serenity replied, ¡°Early October, I believe.¡± It was a hasty marriage, and Serenity was simply looking for a marriage of convenience, so the date was not that important to her. All she remembered was that it was somewhere at the beginning of October. ¡°Seren, our wedding anniversary is on the tenth of October.¡± Finding himself in a hot seat, Zachary finally spoke up and ryed the date they got married. ¡°I confessed my feelings to you after you and Seren got the marriage license. You did it on purpose, Zachary!¡± It was excusable if Elisa professed her love for Zachary before he got married but that was not the case. While Zachary did not ept her feelings, he did not make it clear that he was unavable. Zachary merely put on his wedding band after the harassment got too much. Elisa stopped making advances when she saw the wedding ring. Zachary gruffly uttered, ¡°Do I need to report to you about my personal affair with Seren?¡± ¡°No, you don¡¯t need to, but you could¡¯ve said you were married. I would have steered clear of you from the start. Why didn¡¯t you say anything about being married? You were annoyed by my pestering, but you didn¡¯t stop me from going after you because it fed into your ego.¡± Zachary was stumped for words. Nervous, he moved his gaze to Serenity. Serenity looked back at him. ¡°Seren, we talked about keeping our marriage a secret¡­ That was why I didn¡¯t let Ms. Stone know that I had a wife.¡± Serenity stared at him without a word. Since she had already given Zachary a piece of her mind, there was nothing more she wanted to say to him now. ¡°Elisa.¡± Jasmine gave Elisa a tug and waited until Elisa cast her a nce before whispering,¡± Can I have a word with you?¡± Elisa followed Jasmine out of the shop. Serenity had no idea what was said between them out there. Her settled mind was all over the ce following Elisa¡¯s usations of Zachary. She took a seat behind the cash register and picked up where she left off with her crafting. Serenity said, ¡°You should leave, Zachary. You¡¯ll only make Elisa mad by being here.¡± Scowling, Zachary blurted in rage, ¡°Serenity, do you care more about Elisa than me? Are you going to dump your husband just because she¡¯s angry?¡± She was kicking him out because of Elisa! Chapter 879 Chapter 879 Chapter 879 Serenity lifted her gaze to meet his eyes. s, Zachary had turned away and walked off. She stared nkly as Zachary tookrge strides away. The hurt sneaked up on her. Serenity had no idea whether it was because of him or herself. Jasmine and Elisa were talking about something outside when Zachary came out of the shop with a grimacing look. Without looking at the girls, he made a beeline to his usual ride¨Cthe Rolls Royce. Zachary had gotten rid of his security team, but the chauffeur stayed behind in case Zachary needed a ride. Seeing that Zachary was out, the chauffeur got out of the car and opened the door for him. Zachary, together with the Rolls Royce, disappeared out of Jasmine and Elisa¡¯s sight in no time. Elisa and Jasmine were left staring at each other. The girls immediately turned on their heels and rushed back into the shop. Serenity was not behind the cash register. Her crafting tools sat quietly on the cash register with trails of blood all over the surface. There were also traces of blood on the scissors. Was Serenity hurt? ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Jasmine and Elisa called out to her while waltzing deeper into the room. Serenity was in the loo. Zachary switched to an angry tone with her out of the blue, but by the time she looked at him, he had stormed out. Distracted, Serenity cut her finger with the scissors. The cut was deep enough to draw blood. She grabbed her go¨Cto ointment, bandage, and antiseptic solution from the drawer to stop the bleeding. With a cotton bud, she applied the antiseptic solution and poured the ointment over the injury before wrapping gauze around her finger. Blood got all over the table and her fingers, so she went into the loo to wash the blood off her hands. ¡°I¡¯m here.¡± Serenity responded as she came out of the loo. ¡°Are you hurt?¡± Jasmine uttered with concern. ¡°Let me see.¡± Showing off her bandaged finger, Serenity acted like nothing ever happened and said, ¡°I identally cut myself with the scissors sometimes. No biggie. It¡¯s bleeding a little, but I¡¯m fine.¡± Jasmine held Serenity¡¯s finger up as she examined it carefully. Although the finger was bandaged, blood was oozing through the gauze. She said in distress, ¡°It¡¯s still bleeding. The cut must be deep. You need to go to the hospital to get it checked out.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. I applied some ointment to stop the bleeding. The bleeding should stop in a bit.¡± Serenity withdrew her arm and waltzed away, remarking, ¡°I¡¯ll just redress my wound.¡± Her two best friends followed behind her. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Returning to her seat behind the cash register, Serenity grabbed a fresh roll of gauze and swathed it around her finger. ¡°Seren, get your wound checked out and redressed in the hospital. You should get a tetanus shot too.¡± The bloody scene made Elisa queasy as she was afraid to see blood. ¡°I¡¯m fine. There¡¯s no need for that. I often get cuts on my finger, and this is how I handle it. The cut will heal in a few days.¡± Jasmine told her off, ¡°It has been many years since you got a cut. What did Zachary say or do to you? You nearly cut your finger off.¡± Chapter 880 Chapter 880 Chapter 880 ¡°It has nothing to do with Zachary. I cut myself by ident.¡± Acting like everything was okay, Serenity said to Elisa, ¡°Elisa, the thing about me and Zachary¡­¡± ¡°I don¡¯t me you, Seren. You don¡¯t have to exin or apologize to me. It¡¯s not like we just met. I¡¯m only furious that Zachary lied to both of us. He made a monkey out of us cousins.¡± Moments ago, Jasmine had told Elisa the whole story about Serenity finding out Zachary¡¯s identity. Elisa¡¯s heart went out to her cousin who was fooled the whole time. ¡°Seren, I gave up on Zachary a long time ago. I got over Zachary the moment I found out he was married. I feel more at peace after I backed off and stopped thinking about him for a while. Don¡¯t let me come in the way of your decision. Lying aside, he¡¯s someone you can spend the rest of your life with. ¡°Of course, since he yed you like a fiddle, I hope you take your time in forgiving him. At least, make him suffer for a bit.¡± Now that Elisa thought about it, she was the older cousin¨Cinw to Zachary now. Elisa could straighten Zachary out for her cousin. ¡°That¡¯s what I think, but I won¡¯t interfere with what you think or how you want to deal with the matter.¡± Elisa picked her injured finger up for a careful inspection. ¡°The bleeding doesn¡¯t seem to stop. Let¡¯s get you to the hospital. You¡¯re looking a little pale too. ¡°I¡¯ll drive you to the hospital.¡± Serenity refused even though her finger was hurting like hell. The scissor really drilled deep into her finger. It was a good thing her finger was still intact. ¡°I¡¯m your cousin, older at that too. You have to listen to me.¡± Not taking no for an answer, Elisa dragged Serenity out. Jasmine was on Elisa¡¯s side, convincing Serenity to clean and redress her injury at the hospital. Serenity gave in to her best friends¡® persuasion and let Elisa drive her to the hospital. Meanwhile, Zachary was headed for his office after picking up what was left of his dignity and leaving the bookshop. Josh was surprised by Zachary¡¯s return. Ditching the work at hand, Josh rushed to Zachary¡¯s office. ¡°What brings you back? Didn¡¯t you say you won¡¯t be at the office for a while? Look at your scary face. Don¡¯t tell me you had another argument with your wife.¡± Josh poured Zachary a ss of water. ¡°Have a drink. Calm yourself down.¡± Zachary helped himself to the drink and downed the water before mming the ss on the table. He remained without a word. ¡°Say something. Tell me if you¡¯re facing another issue. I told you time and again¨Cyou need to do something about that temper of yours.¡± ¡°Elisa is back from her travels.¡± Josh unconcernedly replied, ¡°So she¡¯s back. Are you scared she¡¯s going to do something to your wife when she finds out? I trust you are capable of protecting your woman.¡± Zachary answered, ¡°It¡¯d be easier to handle if she does anything to hurt Serenity, but she didn¡¯t. Elisa was furious and criticized me for lying to Serenity. She used me of making a monkey out of her and Serenity. Things were starting to get slightly better between me and Serenity, but Elisa blew it by turning up and now we¡¯re back to square one. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Serenity even tried to kick me out! I told her off in the heat of the moment¡­ I ran away before I lost my temper and did something to hurt her.¡± Josh stared nkly at him. Hot and bothered, Zachary added, ¡°It¡¯s so hard to appease women! I let her go home with her sister when she wanted to stay with her family. She wanted to cool off, but my presence wasn¡¯t a bother to her. Why did she ask me to leave then? I just wanted to see her. That¡¯s all.¡± ¡°What did you say to her?¡± ¡°I asked if she cared more about Elisa because she¡¯d rather have Elisa around instead of me. She always does that to me. She chooses others over me while I always put her first. I guess I can¡¯t evenpare to Sonny. Well, Sonny is her nephew, so I can¡¯t take it to heart, but I can¡¯t believe Elisa is more important than me.¡± Now that Josh got to the bottom of things, heposedly uttered, ¡°You¡¯re jealous of Elisa. It did not sit well with Serenity that Elisa gave you a piece of her mind, so she asked you to leave. Yet, you got riled up. Zachary, I don¡¯t know how to make this clearer to you.¡± Chapter 881 Chapter 881 Chapter 881 Zachary showed a sour face and held his tongue. Since there was no point talking sense into Zachary now, Josh suggested, ¡°Why don¡¯t you stay in the office while I do the snooping around for you? I think you need some distraction and what better way to get your mind off things than work? It will take more than a day or two before the conflict between you and your wife can be resolved. ¡°It doesn¡¯t help to hurry things along. You¡¯re only making more room for mistakes if you rush into it.¡± It was true that Zachary needed to do something to distract himself. Helpless, he said, ¡°You¡¯ve just gotta let me know that you want to skip work. Don¡¯t use spying for me as an excuse.¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°I¡¯ve been working my *ss for you for so many years. It¡¯s time I get a couple of days off.¡± He and Jasmine had not made progress in their rtionship. It was probably due to Zachary and Serenity that Jasmine remained on the sidelines. Josh could tell Jasmine was interested, but she held her feelings back from liking him. Sigh! Josh had epted that it would be a long road ahead till he could bring home a wife. Only time would show Jasmine his heart. One day, Jasmine would wee him wholeheartedly into her life. He happily went on his way. Josh dumped all his work on Zachary.Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. He went to get a bouquet of flowers from the florist and some of Jasmine¡¯s favorite desserts from the bakery before heading to the bookshop. With Elisa taking Serenity to the hospital to check out her injury, Jasmine remained at the shop. After cleaning up the bloody crime scene, she sat behind the cash register and read a book. ¡°You seem free,¡± a familiar and gentle voice interrupted her moment of peace. Jasmine lifted her head to the sound. Seeing that it was Josh, she put down the book in her hand and said with a smile, ¡°Why are you here? Do you have nothing to do today?¡± ¡°I had to sort out work that had been piled up sincest year. I have to work overtime today, but I¡¯ll be off tomorrow.¡± Jasmine responded, ¡°Oh. I thought you get the weekends off.¡± ¡°That¡¯s usually the case unless the workload significantly increases like right now. We¡¯ll have to work on Saturday and take Sunday off.¡± While handing the flowers to Jasmine, Josh took notice of the bouquet sitting by theputer. He was fixated on the flowers for a while. ¡°That¡¯s for Serenity from Mr. York,¡± Jasmine stated and took the bouquet from Josh. Leaning in for a whiff, Jasmine got up and drew close to a rack. She took an empty vase from the top shelf, stuck the flowers in, and put the vase back. ¡°I bought you some of your favorite desserts.¡± Josh put the confectionery down on the table and took a seat. Looking down, he caught a glimpse of the red-stained paper towels in the trash can under the table. He shot his gaze back up to Jasmine. He made sure Jasmine was not hurt before asking with worry, ¡°Why are there so many bloody paper towels in the can? What happened? Is that blood or paint?¡± ¡°Seren¡¯s blood.¡± With widened eyes, Josh inquired, ¡°Is Serenity hurt?¡± Did Zachary do something to her? ¡°She cut her finger with the scissors. The cut must be deep since the bleeding didn¡¯t stop after she bandaged it. She wouldn¡¯t let us examine her injury. Elisa dragged her to the hospital to redress the wound.¡± Needless to ask, he knew Zachary was the reason. ¡°That¡¯s a lot of blood. I can tell from the bloodied paper towels that the cut is deep.¡± Josh pulled out his phone to snap pictures for his tantrum-throwing boss. Jasmine watched on and did not stop Josh from taking pictures. Chapter 882 Chapter 882 Chapter 882 Judging by the timing of Josh¡¯s arrival, Jasmine guessed that Zachary went to the office. ¡°What did Elisa say or do when she found out that Zachary was Mr. York?¡± Josh did not send the photos to Zachary right away after taking them. Elisa had taken Serenity to the hospital to redress the injury anyway. Zachary would summon him back to the office while he himself would check on his wife at the hospital if Josh were to send him the photos right now. Josh selfishly thought to himself, ¡®All I¡¯m asking for is a half-day.¡¯ He wanted to spend some alone time with Jasmine before going back to ving himself at the office. Josh believed he must have owed Zachary tremendously in another life because he was ungrudgingly paying Zachary back by bending over backward now. ¡°She med Mr. York for lying to Serenity. She didn¡¯t do anything though. Mr. York didn¡¯t defend himself, probably because he couldn¡¯t talk his way out of the truth.¡± Jasmine looked at Josh. ¡°You wealthy and powerful men can win an Oscar with your acting.¡± They had the power to shut people up and keep the deceived in the dark. Ordinary people had no means to stage the y for so long. ¡°I never lied to you, Jasmine. You didn¡¯t want me to hang out with you as Mr. Bucham, so I¡¯m just an ordinary guy here with you. I¡¯ve kept nothing from you.¡± Opening a box of pastries, Jasmine took a bite out of one and said, ¡°You already ran background checks on me. Even if you¡¯re an ordinary guy with me now, you already have all the information you need and don¡¯t need to know about me.¡± Josh was embarrassed. That was his habit. Once he had his eye on someone, Josh would exhaust hiswork to dig out everything about the person. He could only emerge victorious by going in prepared. ¡°Any new gossiptely?¡± Jasmine went for another tart after finishing one. She slid the box toward Josh, gesturing for him to eat. Josh took up Jasmine¡¯s offer and grabbed a cake, but he had trouble keeping the food down. Like Zachary, Josh was not fond of sweet stuff. Taking the cake that he took a bite out of, Josh stealthily hid it under the table. With a smiling face, he answered, ¡°Nothing much. There¡¯s something in showbiz about a celebrity¡¯s tarnished public image, but you¡¯re not interested in that.¡± The showbiz did not pique Jasmine¡¯s interest. She and Serenity would only catch on to the news after the whole world found out about these viral scandals. ¡°Do you have anything on the head of your household?¡± Jasmine was dying to find out if cupid would strike an arrow at the head of the Bucham household. What kind of woman would turn the head of a resourceful man like Julian? Josh pulled out a napkin and kept both hands under the table as he wrapped the cake with the napkin before throwing it into the trash can. Pretending like nothing ever happened, he wiped his hands and put them back on the table. Josh said, ¡°Well, it won¡¯t reach our ears even if there¡¯s gossip about Julian.¡± There was no way they could get dirt on Julian unless thetter leaked the information himself. Curious, Jasmine remarked, ¡°I wonder what type of woman would attract Julian.¡± Josh murmured, ¡°I¡¯d like to know too.¡± Ring, ring, ring¡­ With Jasmine¡¯s phone ringing, she looked at the caller ID and said, ¡°Keep it quiet. It¡¯s Mother Superior calling.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 883 Chapter 883 Chapter 883 Josh was not impressed, to say the least. He had asked Jasmine out many times, but her parents still had no clue that he was pursuing their daughter. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Here Mrs. Sox thought Mr. Bucham was asking Drake out. Josh was lost for words. Jasmine took her mother¡¯s call. ¡°Mom.¡± Jasmine chirped, ¡°What can I do for you, mother dearest?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t act smart with me. Come home early tonight. We¡¯re going to your aunt¡¯s for dinner.¡± Jasmine asked warily, ¡°What¡¯s the asion since we¡¯re having dinner at Aunt Rachel¡¯s ce?¡± Mrs. Sox fell silent for a while before asking in a hushed tone, ¡°Is Serenity with you?¡± ¡°No.¡± ¡°Good. Shawn¡¯s back but only for a couple of days. Your aunt has been missing him since he went to Havenmill. Mothers are all the same. We can¡¯t stop worrying when our children are miles away. Now that Shawn¡¯s back for a few days, your aunt wants to organize a get-together.¡± Scowling, Jasmine nced at Josh and ryed the question that had been bugging her. ¡°Mom, is Shawn going to try anything?¡± Zachary and Serenity were not in a good ce right now. Jasmine hoped her lovestruck cousin would not see this as an opportunity to jump in, or things might end badly for him. No matter what, Shawn was her cousin. Jasmine did not wish for anything to happen to him. Aunt Rachel said they sent Shawn to work at the branch office in Havenmill. He was not to disclose that he was the heir of the Lowes, starting from the bottom up at the branch office. Shawn must not leave Havenmill and return to Wiltspoon without his parents¡¯ permission. Shawn¡¯s bank ount was frozen by his father. Left without any allowance or a car, Shawn had to work and earn his wages. Since the branch office in Havenmill did not provide amodation, Shawn had to rent a ce and pay the rental, water, and electricity bills with his sry. For someone who was born with a silver spoon, life now was tough for Shawn. Nevertheless, his parents only did so to save him and Lowe Enterprise. York Corporation had cut the Lowes some cktely. Mr. and Mrs. Lowe could breathe again, relieved that they made the right call. Jasmine was grateful Zachary got off her aunt and uncle¡¯s backs. It slipped Jasmine¡¯s mind that she had Josh to thank for that. Zachary ceased fire out of respect for Josh and Jasmine, but mostly for Josh. Josh was pursuing Jasmine after all. Jasmine¡¯s close rtionship with her aunt was a good enough reason for Zachary to keep his hands off Lowe Enterprise. Zachary and Josh should know when to quit since the Lowes went so far as to send Shawn to Havenmill, a city many miles away from Wiltspoon. ¡°I doubt Shawn would do anything.¡±` Mrs. Sox sighed. ¡°Your aunt told him that Serenity is Mrs. York before he went to Havenmill. He lost all hope and went there. He hasn¡¯t been in touch with his family. ¡°He has time now that his office is closed for the next two days. He got his wages to pay for the trip home.¡± Mrs. Sox was surprised to hear that Shawn had a crush on Serenity. s, the love confession came toote. Serenity had belonged to another by then. Chapter 884 Chapter 884 Chapter 884 Mrs. Sox would not approve if Shawn continued to dwell on Serenity. What was the meaning of pestering a married woman? ¡°Oh, that reminds me. Your aunt found another nice man for you. You can meet the guy at tonight¡¯s dinner. Your aunt said the guy doesn¡¯te from a wealthy family. She gave up on that criteria since you hate it so much.¡± Truth be told, Mrs. Lowe knew her niece had kissed goodbye the notion of marrying a rich husband the moment Jasminey herself down on the floor at Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party. That was when Mrs. Lowe called it quits on ying the matchmaker. After staying out of her niece¡¯s business for a while, Mrs. Lowe was once again back to find a man for her niece. Jasmine was twenty-six and single with no boyfriend in sight. Aunt Rachel was nervous for her niece who was not getting any younger. The anxiousness was getting to Mrs. Sox too. The twodies would always think about setting Jasmine up on dates whenever they got together. ¡°Your aunt said you¡¯re meeting an executive working in theirpany. He¡¯s been. with thepany for many years, so your uncle knows him well. He had a girlfriend of eight years, but they split three months ago. ¡°Your uncle wanted to pair you two up.¡± Jasmine replied, slightly baffled, ¡°He broke up with a girlfriend of eight years. What¡¯s the reason for the breakup?¡± ¡°Apparently, the girl wanted to end the rtionship. I think she¡¯s marrying someone else. Anyway, they are not together anymore.¡± Jasmine believed the woman did not see the rtionship going anywhere after waiting for eight years. That must be thest straw for her to marry someone else. ¡°Mom, I don¡¯t want to go on a blind date.¡± Jasmine refused to meet with her date. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. The man was heartless to leave a woman hanging for eight years until she crestfallenly married another. Jasmine had a low opinion of the man before they even met. ¡°He was busy with his work to spend time with his girlfriend. That was why she asked to break up,¡± Mrs. Sox added. ¡°Your uncle won¡¯t match you with someone awful. He will only introduce eligible men to you. ¡°How are you supposed to get married if you don¡¯t meet guys? You¡¯re twenty-six, for heaven¡¯s sake. Look at Serenity. You got to try harder, or you¡¯ll still be single by the time Serenity bes a mother.¡± ¡°I can be a mom when Serenity bes one. I¡¯m going to be the godmother to Serenity¡¯s kids.¡± Furious, Mrs. Sox chewed Jasmine out, ¡°Being a godmother doesn¡¯t mean anything. I dare you to be a mom yourself.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m too much of a wimp to take up on your challenge, so I guess I¡¯ll settle with being a godmother. Drake said that he¡¯ll take care of me if I can¡¯t find myself a husband.¡± ¡°Get lost!¡± Jasmine chuckled. ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry about me, Mom. I can find myself a better man than you all are setting me up with when I feel like settling down.¡± ¡°Go on. Brag all you want. Why don¡¯t you prove us wrong and bring a man home then? In fact, take him to your aunt¡¯s dinner tonight if you want us toy off your back.¡± Rising to his feet, Josh propped his elbows on the table and leaned forward to ask Mrs. Sox over the phone, ¡°Mrs. Sox, do I need to bring anything to the dinner? What do Mr. and Mrs. Lowe like? I should bring a gift.¡± Jasmine wanted to cover Josh¡¯s mouth, but it was toote. Mrs. Sox heard everything on the other end. ¡°You sound familiar, boy. Jasmine, give the phone to him. I want to talk to him.¡± Jasmine shot Josh a dirty look before reluctantly handing the phone to him. Josh took the phone and introduced himself to Mrs. Sox with a smile. ¡°Mrs. Sox, I¡¯m Josh. You met me before.¡± ¡°Oh, Josh. No wonder your voice is so familiar. Are you pretending to be Jasmine¡¯s date?¡± Mrs. Sox knew Josh got along with her son. Josh left quite an impression on Mrs. Sox as her son would not stop talking about how great Josh was. Chapter 885 Chapter 885 Chapter 885 Nevertheless, Josh was a brilliant man. Mrs. Sox would sigh to herself every time Josh invited her son out for dinner. She would leap with delight if Josh asked her daughter out instead. In fact, Mrs. Sox would beughing in her sleep. Josh earnestly replied, ¡°Mrs. Sox, I¡¯m not pretending to be Jasmine¡¯s date. To put it urately, I¡¯m pursuing Jasmine. She hasn¡¯t agreed to be my girlfriend.¡± Mrs. Sox put the phone away from her ear, making sure she had called the right number. She picked her ear before cing the phone back against it. She asked, ¡± Are you really Mr. Bucham?¡± ¡°It¡¯s me, Mrs. Sox.¡± ¡°Did you say you¡¯re wooing Jasmine and not Drake?¡± Josh replied, ¡°Mrs. Sox¡­ I¡¯m a straight guy. I only like women.¡± He moaned in his mind, ¡®My future mother-inw and Jasmine are the same to suspect I have a thing for Drake.¡¯ Amusingly, Mrs. Sox did not stop him from asking Drake out despite her suspicions. The olddy was quite open-minded. ¡°But you¡¯re so nice to Drake, so much so I thought you fell in love with my boy. I often asked his father about what we should do if our son has a husband and whether he could ept it. Man, you should see the look on his face.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Josh was at a loss for words. ¡°Mrs. Sox.¡± Holding a palm up against his face, Josh exined, ¡°I like your daughter, Jasmine. I was only nice to Drake because he is Jasmine¡¯s brother. I was trying to impress my future brother-inw and get in his good graces. ¡°Hadn¡¯t Jasminee along every time I asked Drake out?¡± Mrs. Sox burst outughing. ¡°I see. I see. It¡¯s good that you¡¯re not interested in Drake that way. At least I don¡¯t have to worry whether I can ept a man as my son¡¯s other half. Come here, honey. I got some good news for you. You don¡¯t have to worry about your son bringing home a man. ¡°Mr. Bucham isn¡¯t infatuated with Drake. He¡¯s smitten with our daughter. I guess you can say that he had an ulterior motive. Hahaha. I can¡¯t believe someone is interested in our Jasmine.¡± Josh was speechless. So was Jasmine. Was she that bad? There were a lot of guys who had a crush on her. She was not looking for a rtionship, that was all. She could enjoy the single and free life without putting herself out there to be hurt. Love hurt for Seren. ¡°Mrs. Sox, I¡¯m serious with Jasmine. Although I haven¡¯t won her heart, I¡¯m trying. I hope you can give me a chance, and don¡¯t put me up against love rivals.¡± Mrs. Sox was on cloud nine, mainly because someone wanted her daughter. Seeing that her daughter did not shy away from the man, Mrs. Sox knew that her daughter was attracted to Josh. She answered with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll give you all the chances in the world. Well, I really like you. I constantly told my husband that it would be great if you fell for Jasmine instead. I can¡¯t believe my dreams came true. Alright, I¡¯ll let her aunt know to disinvite the date. Come along with Jasmine to her aunt¡¯s ce later.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Sox.¡± Knowing the right words to say, Josh had Mrs. Sox tickled pink. Jasmine watched as Josh had a great conversation with her mom. She made the right choice by keeping from her family that Josh was after her. Just look at her mom. Chapter 886 Chapter 886 Chapter 886 Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Unfortunately, these good days wereing to an end. Josh finally ended the call with Mrs Sox He returned the phone to Jasmine and looked at her with a smile and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go to your aunt¡¯s house for dinner tonight What should I prepare? What¡¯s my status How an Jasmine nced at him as she continued to eat, and said, ¡°Even if you¡¯re a scumbag, my aunt and the others will still think that you¡¯re the best.¡± He was Josh Bucham, the Mr. Bucham from York Corporation, and from the mysterious Bucham family. That status and identity were what her aunt wanted her niece to have When they discovered that Serenity¡¯s husband was the heir of the York family, Jasmine¡¯s mother and aunt envied Serenity¡¯s good fortune in front of Jasmine for having taken one of the most outstanding men in Wiltspoon. They always looked at Jasmine when they praised Serenity, and Jasmine knew very well what those expressions meant. Josh said confidently, ¡°I¡¯m not a scumbag Not to blow my own trumpet, but there aren¡¯t many men in Wiltspoon who are more exceptional than me.¡± ¡°I must have been a great person in my past life for you to like me in this life.¡± ¡°We were both great people in our past lives, that¡¯s why we could meet each other in this life. We need to be great people in this life as well so we can meet again in our next life.¡± Jasmine wanted to say, ¡®I don¡¯t want to meet you again in my next life. Your smile. looks warm and affable, but it¡¯s terrifying that people will lose sleep if they see it.¡± However, she swallowed her words. No one knew if there was an afterlife. She had to live her current life first. ¡°We¡¯re not an item yet. My mom-¡± ¡°If I don¡¯t show them my resolve, your mom and aunt will keep arranging blind dates. for you. What should I do if you meet someone else again? It¡¯s good that I made a stance. Otherwise, your mom would continue thinking I¡¯m gay and pursuing your brother.¡± ¡°Cough, cough¡ª¡± Jasmine choked on the desserts in her mouth. Josh quickly got up and poured her a cup of warm water. After handing it to her, he patted her back and asked, ¡°Is it that funny? You doubted me the same way as well.¡± He had no idea that people nowadays thought so liberally. He was simply treating his future brother-inw nicer with an ulterior motive, but Mrs. Sox thought he was trying to pursue Drake. Even Jasmine thought the same. Jasmine drank the water to relieve herself andughed. ¡°You were so good to my brother to the point of spoiling him. Your eyes are full of indulgence whenever you look at my brother. It¡¯s your own performance that caused misunderstandings, so don¡¯t me my mom and I for our wild imaginations.¡± Jasmine would not have believed that he was pursuing her if he did not say anything. Josh was speechless. ¡°Your brother is my brother. What¡¯s wrong with me spoiling my own brother?¡± ¡°The problem is that my brother isn¡¯t your brother. I can see why my mom keeps sighing whenever she sees Drake and me nowadays. She keeps saying that we should switch ces. Turns out it was because she thought you liked Drake.¡± Josh said, ¡°If a person likes someone, they have to show it. They really can¡¯t beat around the bush.¡± It was easy for people with wild imaginations like Mrs. Sox to have misunderstandings. Jasmine said, ¡°It¡¯s because big shots in high positions like you have too many hidden motives, so you like to beat around the bush. Simple people like me only worry about what we¡¯re going to eat for the day. We don¡¯t think about the stuff you do.¡± Joshughed. ¡°Don¡¯t make yourself sound so pitiful. I think what you worry about all day is that you have to run around many ces to collect rent. Tell me the next time you¡¯re sick of collecting duty, and I¡¯ll be your errand boy, I want to experience what it¡¯s like to have house keys hanging all over my body.¡± Chapter 887 Chapter 887 Chapter 887 Jasmine could not help butugh. ¡°You can be andlord whenever you want.¡± ¡°My family¡¯s houses and stores belong to my parents, not me. My mom only told me to collect the rent because she¡¯s toozy to do it herself, and she gives me a few thousand as remuneration.¡± Her parents¡¯ money belonged to themselves, Her capabilities could only be measured by the money she earned by herself. ¡°Aunt Rachel said that Shawn came back and asked us to go over for dinner for a get- together. ¡°He just came back for the weekend to see my aunt. He won¡¯t try to bug Seren, so you and Mr. York should stop attacking him and Lowe Enterprise.¡± Jasmine was not dumb. She figured everything out after learning that Zachary was from the York family. Jasmine would not believe that Josh did not have a hand in Lowe Enterprise being attacked. Josh did not have a guilty conscience, so he said, ¡°Zachary only told Mr. Lowe the reason he terminated their cooperation out of consideration for you and I. Otherwise, Lowe Enterprise would still have no inkling what hit them.¡± Jasmine looked at him and thought, ¡®Out of consideration for you? What do you have to do with the Lowe family?¡¯ However, when she thought of how Josh was trying to pursue her¡­ Zachary was still a man with some respect. He was not as heartless as the rumors painted him to be. ¡°Shawn likes Seren very much, but he gave up after knowing that she¡¯s married to Zachary,¡± Jasmine remembered what her mom had told her. After New Year¡¯s, Aunt Rachel told Shawn her decision to send him to the branch office in Havenmill so he could start over from the bottom. They also froze Shawn¡¯s bank ount and allowance. Recounting Shawn¡¯s reaction at that time¡­ ¡°Mom, I already did as you said. I stopped contacting Seren and going to see her. Isn¡¯t it enough? Why are you chasing me out to Havenmill?¡± Shawn was furious: His mother controlled him and forbade him from meeting Serenity. He was not even allowed to call her. He missed her so much that he was going crazy, but for her sake, he tried his best to endure it and did not dare visit her bookstore. Despite that, his mother still wanted to send him to Havenmill. Shawn angrily asked his mother, ¡°What do you want from me, Mom? I¡¯m your son. Don¡¯t you feel distressed for me?¡± Aunt Rachel stood up and wanted to p him, but her hand froze midair as she stared at her son¡¯s angry face. His handsome face which was originally full of vigor and vitality was now sunken and lifeless because of Serenity. However, it was not Serenity¡¯s fault. It was her son¡¯s feelings. Having emotions was always more painful than being void of them. Shawn loved Serenity deeply. Serenity was not affected at all, but Shawn lived in pain and yearning every day. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Aunt Rachel felt heartbroken for her son. However, she said the cruelest words to him. She dropped her hand and said coldly,¡± Do you know who Serenity¡¯s husband is?¡± She looked her son in the eyes and continued, ¡°Do you think the man she suddenly married is really just an ordinary employee? Do you think you canpete with him because you¡¯re the young master of the Lowe family? Shawn, you¡¯re still too young. How can you fight with your love rival when you don¡¯t even know his identity? ¡°I¡¯ll tell you then. The man Serenity married isn¡¯t an ordinary employee. He¡¯s the CEO of York Corporation. Don¡¯t widen your eyes and look so shocked. It¡¯s the truth. Serenity¡¯s husband is the eldest young master of the York family. ¡°You met him at a banquet before, and he greeted you as well.¡± Chapter 888 Chapter 888 Chapter 888 At those words, Shawn was shell-shocked. He was in utter disbelief. ¡°You¡¯re lying, right? You¡¯re lying to me because you want me to give up. How can Serenity¡¯s husband be Mr. York? I¡­¡± Shawn suddenly remembered that he had not seen Serenity¡¯s husband since she got married. ¡°I have no reason to lie to you. I also found out about this not long ago. It was Mr. York who told us himself. He said that he was attacking Lowe Enterprise because you¡¯re pining for his wife. Shawn, the entire Lowe family will be buried with you if you continue to pester Serenity.¡± Solemnly his mother added, ¡°You don¡¯t have to bring benefits to the Lowe family, but don¡¯t drag Lowe Enterprise through the mud.¡± ¡°Zachary¡­ Mr. York¡¯s name is Zachary?¡± Shawn was in incredulity. Mr. York was Serenity¡¯s husband! ¡°It¡¯s not surprising that you don¡¯t know Mr. York¡¯s name. Many people don¡¯t either. Shawn, it doesn¡¯t matter what his name is. What matters is that he¡¯s Serenity¡¯s husband! Putting aside his status, position, and power, you should stop pestering Serenity the moment he said that he was her husband. ¡°She¡¯s a married woman. You¡¯ll be the death of her! After your father and I discussed this, we decided to let you go to the branch office in Havenmill. It¡¯s up to you whether you can be Lowe Enterprise¡¯s sessor or not.¡± She sighed and reminded her son, ¡°Shawn, you¡¯re the most exceptional one in your generation, but if you don¡¯t work hard, everything that could belong to you will be someone else¡¯s. I know you¡¯re heartbroken, but don¡¯t prolong your agony, son. You¡¯re still young. You¡¯ll only be twenty-three next year. You¡¯ll definitelye to meet more girls who are better than Serenity. ¡°There¡¯s no need to ruin yourself for Serenity. Besides, can you win against Mr. York? He only needs to say a word and raise his finger, and Lowe Enterprise will be in shambles.¡± Shawn¡¯s face was ashen. He slumped feebly on the sofa. After a long time, he said bitterly, ¡°I¡¯ll listen to you and Dad.¡± Serenity would be the pain of his life. Pulling her drifting thoughts back, Jasmine also felt heartbroken for her cousin. She spoke up for him and said, ¡°Give Shawn some time. He¡¯ll get over it. He¡¯s still young. I believe he¡¯ll be able to come out of it after he meets his Miss Right.¡± Josh swore, ¡°Whether or not we get together, I promise you that as long as Mr. Lowe stops pestering our CEO¡¯s wife, I won¡¯t be Lowe Enterprise¡¯s executioner.¡± He only dealt with Lowe Enterprise under Zachary¡¯s orders. ¡°Shawn gave up after knowing Mr. York¡¯s identity.¡± How many people in Wiltspoon would dare to fight Zachary for his woman? It would be ridiculous. Zachary and Serenity were a legal couple. No matter who became Zachary¡¯s love rival, it was immoral- the other man would be a homewrecker. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren went to the hospital to get her wound dressed. Why is it taking so long?¡± Jasmine changed the subject. She picked up her phone. ¡°I¡¯ll call and ask Elisa.¡± Josh hummed and also picked up his phone. Then, he sent Zachary the photo he took earlier. Zachary quickly replied to him with a question mark. Josh said, ¡°It¡¯s your wife¡¯s blood. She cut her finger with a pair of scissors because of you. Her finger was almost cut off. She was rushed to the hospital by her cousin.¡± Chapter 889 Chapter 889 Chapter 889 The phone in Zachary¡¯s hand almost slipped to the ground. He anxiously called Josh. ¡°Josh, which hospital is Seren in?¡± His words affected her so much that they caused her to hurt herself. Zachary regretted and med himself. Why could he not control his foul temper? ¡°I don¡¯t know which hospital she¡¯s at either. I saw Jasmine alone when I came to the store. I only learned that your wife was injured and sent to a hospital by Elisa when I asked. If you want to know what happened, then call and ask.¡± Zachary immediately hung up the call with Josh. He called Serenity. The line rang for a long time before she picked up. ¡°Which hospital are you at, Seren? Are you badly hurt? I¡¯ll be right there.¡± The person who answered the phone was Elisa. Serenity was getting an IV infusion. It was only after arriving at the hospital did Elisa see how deep Serenity¡¯s wound was. It continued to bleed even as the doctor cleaned the wound again. Elisa was a little afraid of blood, so her legs went weak when she saw the blood dripping. In the end, she did not dare look and turned to walk away. Only then did she feel slightly better. As Serenity¡¯s scissors had been used for a long time, it was somewhat rusty. The doctor suggested she get a tetanus shot and an intravenous antibiotic. Serenity injured the middle finger of her left hand. It was not convenient for her to hold her phone after the wound was dressed, so she asked Elisa to help her answer her phone¡­ Elisa¡¯s heart still felt a little bitter when she heard Zachary¡¯s anxious voice. Like her family, she did not understand why Zachary chose Serenity. How was she inferior to Serenity? That bitterness onlysted for a moment, and she responded to Zachary, ¡°Seren¡¯s wound was bandaged, and she also got a tetanus shot. She¡¯s getting an IV infusion now.¡± She looked at the IV and said, ¡°It¡¯ll take about twenty minutes before the infusion is finished.¡± ¡°Why are you answering the phone? Where¡¯s Seren?¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Elisa retorted, ¡°Why can¡¯t it be me? Seren is getting an IV drip now and can¡¯t take your call. ¡°Do you need anything else? Otherwise, I¡¯m hanging up.¡¯ ¡°Which hospital are you guys at?¡± ¡± ¡°Find it out yourself. Aren¡¯t you immensely capable? You were able to conceal everything perfectly when you lied to Seren. There are only so many hospitals in Wiltspoon, so don¡¯t tell me you can¡¯t locate it. Also, watch your tone the next time you talk to me. I¡¯m Seren¡¯s older cousin!¡± Chapter 890 Chapter 890 Chapter 890 Zachary was speechless. There was no doubt Elisa was Clive¡¯s sister-the siblings were the same. When they found out that he was Serenity¡¯s husband, they both acted like they had seniority over him as Serenity¡¯s older cousins. He hung up the phone. The nearest hospital to Wiltspoon School was Wiltspoon Community Hospital. Even without checking, he could guess that Elisa sent Serenity to Wiltspoon Community Hospital. Elisa was not angry at being hung up on by Zachary. She helped put Serenity¡¯s phone back into her purse and said, ¡°Seren, your mom is my aunt, which means we¡¯re cousins. The DNA test confirmed it, so it¡¯s an indisputable fact. ¡°I¡¯m a year older than you, so I have seniority over you, right? Zachary is your husband. It stands to reason that I also have seniority over him. You need to make him address me more politely, or my anger won¡¯t be relieved.¡± Serenity wanted tough and said, ¡°It¡¯s his mouth. I can¡¯t control him if he doesn¡¯t want to do it.¡± ¡°You have to control him. If you don¡¯t, he¡¯ll still look at me with that sullen expression and talk to me coldly! I can¡¯t be his wife, but it¡¯s not bad to be his older sister. Hahaha! I just want him to call me respectfully!¡± She sat down in the vacant seat beside Serenity, looked down at Serenity¡¯s injured hand, and said in distress, ¡°Did you think of your hand as Zachary and cut it because you were angry?¡± ¡°Of course not. No matter how angry I am, I won¡¯t harm myself. It really was an ident. Maybe I just used too much strength because I was angry.¡± ¡°Actually, Zachary is an exceptionally good man. He¡¯s from a good family too. I was born and raised in a rich family, so I know very well what wealthy families are like. I can say that a rich family like the Yorks is one of the only few of its kind in the whole province.¡± Elisa added enviously, ¡°The Johnsons from Annenburg are simr to the Yorks in Wiltspoon, but I¡¯ve never heard of a third family like theirs. In any case, the York family is at the top of the pyramid. The family members are thriving and united. They¡¯re the cream of the crop. ¡°It¡¯s fine if you quarrel with Zachary for a few days, but not for too long. You¡¯ll regret it for the rest of your life if you lose him. Look at me. I fixed my eyes on him and was obsessed with him for so many years. I even dreamed of marrying him before, but we¡¯re not meant to be. ¡°Of course, you have to look at his performance before deciding whether you¡¯d want to forgive him. If he behaves badly, such as imprisoning you or knocking you out like he did before, then you should stay mad for a few more days.¡± Elisa admitted that Zachary was worthy of a lifelongmitment. Otherwise, she would not have been obsessed with him for so many years and only given up when she learned that he was married. ¡°Seren, there¡¯s no one else here. I¡¯m one year older than you are, as well as your cousin. Even if we met each other just recently, I clicked with you instantly and had long since regarded you as a bosom friend. What I say to you are all heartfelt words. ¡°You won¡¯t divorce Zachary, right? Maybe you¡¯ll think about divorcing in a fit of anger, but Zachary will never agree. If he doesn¡¯t agree, it doesn¡¯t matter even if you try suing him for divorce. His words are law in Wiltspoon. ¡°Since you can¡¯t get a divorce, you have to confront the reality between you two. Previously, you didn¡¯t know that he was from the York family and thought he was an ordinary sryman, so there was no disparity. Now that you know his real identity and two different worlds have collided, there is bound to be a reality gap. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Trust me. It¡¯s hard to be a noblewoman. You must make yourself strong. I believe that if you work hard, Liberty and you can grow stronger. You both have that undefeatable resilience in you. ¡°You can¡¯t be content with what you have now. To those nobledies, the ie you have each month isn¡¯t even enough to buy a bag. In the future, you¡¯re representing not just yourself but also Zachary. You¡¯re the missus of the York family, and the wife of the next head of the family. ¡°My mom was an orphan who climbed up with her own strength. Despite that, she also encountered many problems when she first married my dad. My grandfather trusted and admired my mom, but my grandmother acted like a stereotypical mother- inw. She had always picked on her daughter-inw. ¡°My mom struggled with my grandmother. It was only when Stone Group faced a crisis that my dad couldn¡¯t manage and my mom saved the day, pluster on when my two brothers were born, that my grandmother finally epted and acknowledged my mom. ¡°My mom always says that women should be self-reliant. We have to be strong without depending on anyone. That¡¯s the only way we can stand firm and not be bullied in this cruel and unfair world. Chapter 891 Chapter 891 Chapter 891 Serenity looked at Elisa quietly. Elisa said, ¡°I¡¯m a little tired from talking so much. I¡¯ll go get a ss of water. Do you want one?¡± ¡°Yes, please, and thank you.¡± Elisa reached out and lightly pinched Serenity¡¯s face,ughing. ¡°We¡¯re sisters. There¡¯s no need to be so polite. You take quite good care of your face. It¡¯s really nice to touch. Does Zachary like to touch your face?¡± Serenity was speechless. Before she could answer, Elisa smiled and walked away. She poured Serenity and herself a cup of warm water. Serenity stretched out her injured hand, but instead of handing her the cup, Elisa brought it straight to Serenity¡¯s lips and said thoughtfully, ¡°I¡¯ll feed you.¡± ¡°I can do it myself. I can¡¯t do anything else with my fingers wrapped like this, but I can still hold a ss of water.¡± Although that was what Serenity said, she still epted Elisa¡¯s thoughtfulness. After they both finished their water, Elisa sat down again and said, ¡°That¡¯s all I have to say to you for now. Think about what I said. If you¡¯re not willing to change yourself, then tell Zachary clearly. You two can split up early if Zachary and his family can¡¯t ept it.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not like his family doesn¡¯t know that I¡¯m poor,¡± Serenity spoke for her inws. The York family knew her background from the beginning. Elisaughed. ¡°That¡¯s true. The elders of the York family are very open-minded. Even if they don¡¯t approve of you in their hearts, they won¡¯t do anything to you in the open. They respect the decisions of the younger generation, so you just have to deal with Zachary. ¡°I don¡¯t think it¡¯s possible for you two to separate unless he doesn¡¯t love you anymore. However, he¡¯s very overbearing and devoted. If you want to leave him, you¡¯ll probably have to wait until you¡¯re reincarnated into your next life.¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°Elisa, I also think that the gap between us is too big. Even if we reconcile now, I¡¯ll always feel as if I¡¯m not good enough for him. I¡¯ll be sensitive to it. Sensitive people are also prone to lose their temper. ¡°Fights will happen easily if I lose my temper, and our feelings for each other aren¡¯t that deep in the first ce. Our rtionship can¡¯t handle the strain if we quarrel constantly. As for breaking up, it¡¯s true that he¡¯s not willing to break up with me now. To be honest, I can¡¯t bear to break up with him either. I have feelings for him too. ¡°Let me think over it.¡± Serenity had put much thought into it. She thought about what Zachary and she would face in the future. As Elisa said, she would represent not only herself but also Zachary, and even the entire York family in the future. Every move she made would be put under microscopic eyes. If she made the slightest mistake, news about it would instantly go viral, which would seriously affect the reputation of herself and the York family. It was hard to be a noblewoman, and harder still to be the wife of the man from the richest family in the city. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. She did not have a strong family as her backer. If she wanted to hold hands with Zachary for the rest of her life, she had to make herself stronger just like how her aunt had risen in the Stone family. However, it was easier said than done. Now that all industries were saturated, it would be highly difficult if she wanted to re- invest in a business. She did not even know which industry to start with. She did not have any big ideals before. She simply thought that she would continue running the bookstore with her best friend. With the small amount of money she earned from her online store, she would save enough money for a house down payment so she could have a real home of her own in the bustling city. Compared to many sry workers, she was already well-off. She never thought about marrying into the nobility, nor was she interested in them. That was because she knew she did not want to squeeze into a circle that she did not belong to. She did not have a strong passion for anything and just wanted to live a quiet life. Everyone knew why she suddenly married Zachary, so there was nothing more to be said about that. Chapter 892 Chapter 892 Chapter 892 Never in her wildest dreams would she guess that she was lied to by Grandma May and Zachary. The man whom she thought was an ordinary sryman turned out to be the eldest young master of the York family. A plot that only appeared in novels actually happened in real life. Serenity was truly dumbfounded. She was caught off guard and did not know what to do. She could not leave, but she could not continue on either. She was extremely conflicted. It was hard for her to replicate the path taken by her aunt. Times were better back when her aunt was young. She could climb up as long as she seized the opportunity. However, it waspletely different now. Of course, Serenity knew that women should strive for self-improvement. She never thought of relying on a man for the rest of her life. From her sister¡¯s marriage, she witnessed that she could not believe men when they said nonsense like ¡°I¡¯ll support you¡±. Their mentality would change at any time. Several men in suits nervously gathered around a man and walked into the room. Their presence pulled Serenity back from her thoughts. The two women could not help but look over. Elisa thought it was Zachary, but when she saw the man who was being surrounded, she blinked and muttered, ¡°Why is he here?¡± She did not expect to see him at the hospital. Serenity looked at her and asked, ¡°Do you know them?¡± ¡°I only know one of them. The rest are his bodyguards, so I don¡¯t know their names. ¡°Who is he?¡± Serenity asked curiously. Elisa responded, ¡°He¡¯s also a big shot. He¡¯s a wolf in sheep¡¯s clothing. He looks gentle, but he¡¯s incredibly ruthless in reality.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡®Can¡¯t you just say his name?¡¯ ¡± ¡°He has a deep business partnership with your husband. He¡¯s from FC & Co. from Annenburg. I mentioned his family to you before; the Johnsons which isparable to the Yorks. He¡¯s the fifth son in the family and is the younger brother of the current head of the Johnson family. ¡°Like Zachary, he travels around in grandiose. Zachary brings a group of bodyguards with him to keep away admirers like me, but Remy Johnson does so for his own safety since he¡¯s not that good in self- defense.¡± Serenity blinked. It seemed that Elisa paid quite a lot of attention to Remy. Remy Johnson. She remembered that name. Zachary mentioned him before and said that Remy was also a man worthy of a lifelongmitment. However, Annenburg was a bit far from Wiltspoon. When Zachary paired Jasmine and Josh but saw no progress between the two, he said he would introduce Remy to her as well. However, he was worried that Jasmine would not be willing to marry off to a distant ce. Furthermore, the Johnsons were also a powerful family, which meant Jasmine¡¯s unwillingness to marry into such a family. The topic never came up again after that. ¡°Men like them, who can take charge of argepany and skillfully navigate their way through the business world, have a ruthless side. Don¡¯t be fooled by his gentle appearance. My eldest brother has a very favorable opinion of the Johnsons¡¯ men. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°They¡¯re easy to talk to if you don¡¯t anger them, and they don¡¯t put up airs as members of a rich family. Even the head of their family has a low profile and lives like an ordinary person. However, if you piss them off, you¡¯ll die without even knowing how your life ended.¡± Chapter 893 Chapter 893 Chapter 893 ¡°Right, the head of their family is the same as you. He also got married out of nowhere. His wife grew up in the countryside too, but she was much luckier than you. Although she was adopted, her adoptive parents treated her as if she was their own and raised her well. ¡°She has adoptive parents who genuinely love her, and she has an older brother who spoils her like crazy too Later, she found her biological parents who turned out to be from the richest family in Meadspring Her identity changed from a country bumpkin to the missy of the Meadspring¡¯s Lafayette family overnight. She¡¯s a match for the Johnson family head whether it¡¯s her status or identity.¡± Elisa was from the Stone family, so she knew all about the gentry¡¯s affairs. Her cousin was not as lucky as Mrs. Johnson. ¡°Seren, do you think I should go over and greet him? I¡¯ve met Remy several times before.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Since you know each other, go over and say hello.¡± ¡°I think so too. Sit here while I go and say hello. Why did hee to the hospital with so many bodyguards? Is he afraid the nurses will prick him to death?¡± Serenity burst out intoughter. Elisa grumbled about Remy putting on airs while walking toward him. However, he turned around and ran before she could get close. He ran toward the washroom. His bodyguards were nervous and at a loss. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with Mr. Johnson?¡± Elisa asked curiously. Judging by Remy¡¯s reaction, it seemed to be¡­ diarrhea. Remy¡¯s bodyguards were also surprised to see Elisa. They did not expect to see the daughter of the Stone family here while Remy came for diarrhea. ¡°What are you doing here, Ms. Stone?¡± a bodyguard blurted out. Elisa responded, ¡°I¡¯m keeping my cousinpany while she¡¯s getting an infusion. She got hurt. Is Mr. Johnson¡¯s stomach ufortable?¡± The bodyguard hummed and did not say much. ¡°Has he seen a doctor?¡± ¡°Yes. He was also prescribed medicine. He needs to get an IV infusion.¡± Elisa said in concern, ¡°Is it that serious?¡± The bodyguard was silent. Elisa knew they were reluctant to let her know the real reason Remy needed an infusion. She stopped asking questions and turned back to sit by Serenity¡¯s side. When Remy came out of the washroom again, the nurse had already prepared the IV drip and was ready to give him the infusion. Remy originally wanted to lie down in the ward for the infusion, but he inadvertently saw Elisa and immediately straightened his back. Then, he pretended to be fine and walked over with his bodyguards. ¡°Hello, Mrs. York and Ms. Stone.¡± Serenity was famous in Wiltspoon now. There was no one who did not know the young missus of the York family who popped out of nowhere. If not for Zachary and Josh, Serenity would have been swarmed by the media. She would not have been able to stay here quietly for her infusion. At first, Serenity did not even realize that ¡°Mrs. York¡± was referring to her. Elisa asked, ¡°What happened to you, Mr. Johnson?¡± ¡°I had sudden stomach flu. I was nauseous and kept vomiting. I also had abdominal pain and diarrhea apanied by a fever. I couldn¡¯t take it anymore, so I came to the hospital.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Oh, that sounds pretty rough. You should drink more water. ¡°Thank you for the concern, Ms. Stone.¡± Then, he looked at Serenity. When he saw her finger wrapped in gauze, he asked with concern, ¡°You¡¯re injured?¡± Serenity smiled wryly. ¡°I wanted to test if the scissors were sharp and cut my hand.¡± Remy was speechless.This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. He looked at Serenity and Elisa, then thought, ¡®Why is Elisa here instead of Zachary when Mrs. York is injured?¡¯ He sat down on the chair next to Serenity to get his infusion. That way, he could chat with Elisa in the meantime. The bodyguards helped Remy get his medicine and poured him a ss of warm water to take the pills. Along with the infusion, it would help him heal a little faster. Chapter 894 Chapter 894 Chapter 894 A few minutester, Zachary arrived in a hurry. ¡°Seren.¡± There was only Serenity in his eyes. He did not notice Remy sitting to the side chatting with Elisa. Zachary quickly walked to Serenity and looked at the IV drip, then he crouched and gently held up Serenity¡¯s injured finger. His heart ached as he asked, ¡°Does it hurt?¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you try for yourself?¡± Zachary med himself. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Seren. I was wrong again.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity pursed her lips and said, ¡°It has nothing to do with you. I hurt myself identally.¡± Zachary looked up at her. She met his eyes for a moment and then looked away. His heart clenched. He stood up, and said after a moment, ¡°The infusion is finished. I¡¯ll send you home. Rest well and don¡¯t touch cold water for the next few days so the wound doesn¡¯t get infected.¡± ¡°You¡¯re busy with work, so you don¡¯t need to send me. Elisa will send me home.¡± It was a Saturday, but his wholepany was working overtime. It was clear that work was up to their necks. Zachary stared at her. Elisa and Remy, who were watching from the side, exchanged nces. Remy cleared his throat. Only then did Zachary notice him. ¡°Why are you here, Mr. Johnson?¡± Remy smiled wryly. ¡°I¡¯m a fully grown man who has been sitting here the entire time. You¡¯ve been here for several minutes but haven¡¯t seen me. It seems I have the ability to turn invisible.¡± ¡°What happened, Mr. Johnson?¡± Zachary did not get offended by Remy¡¯s sarcasm. He only saw Serenity when he entered and did not notice anyone else. He did not expect to see Remy here. ¡°I don¡¯t know why, but I suddenly got a stomach bug. I came to the hospital because I couldn¡¯t handle it anymore.¡± Zachary nced at Elisa. He seemed to have a sudden feeling that Elisa and Remy were a good match. ¡°Seren¡¯s infusion is finished. Call the nurse over and help her remove the needle,¡± Elisa instructed Zachary to call for the nurse. Zachary did not like Elisa talking to him in amanding tone, but he had to endure it as he went to call the nurse. After the nurse pulled out the needle, he instinctively wanted to help Serenity press the puncture wound, but Elisa was faster than him and pressed it first. She also said in a warm voice, ¡°Seren, you need to keep pressure on it for a few minutes so it doesn¡¯t bleed.¡± Zachary could not steal the spotlight from Elisa. He could not argue with Elisa now. He asked with concern, ¡°Has Seren gotten her medicine yet?¡± ¡°Not yet. You go to the pharmacy to get it for her. There is no oral medicine. It¡¯s all topical medication for dressing wounds.¡± The one who answered was naturally Elisa. Zachary pursed his lips and turned around to go to the pharmacy to help his wife get her medicine. As soon as he did, Elisa helped Serenity walk out. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary quickly walked over. ¡°Let me take you home, okay?¡± He then said to Elisa, ¡°Thank you for taking care of her, Ms. Stone.¡± Serenity did not want toe to the hospital. It was Elisa who dragged her here. This was something Zachary was thankful to Elisa for. Serenity and Zachary¡¯s rtionship as a couple warmed up a bit but fell back to square one because of Elisa. Zachary was especially displeased with that and was even jealous of Elisa, but he could not deny that Elisa genuinely cared about Serenity. Zachary also knew that he could no longer treat Elisa as coldly as before. She was Serenity¡¯s cousin! Serenity cared about her. Zachary thought about how Serenity seemed to care about everyone except for him, and his heart felt bitter again. Chapter 895 Chapter 895 Chapter 895 Elisa asked Serenity, ¡°Seren, do you want him or me to send you back?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll take a cab myself.¡± Serenity did not let Elisa or Zachary send her back so she would not offend either party. Ugh, life was so hard! ¡°Let Zachary send you back. I¡¯ve been out for a long time and should be going back too. My mom doesn¡¯t even know I went out. Elisa took the initiative to step down. She looked deeply at Zachary, then let go of Serenity and left. ¡°Zachary.¡± She suddenly stopped again, turned, her head, and called out Zachary¡¯s name. ¡°Don¡¯t force Serenity, Zachary! Also, my family will always stand on Serenity¡¯s side. Don¡¯t think that you can bully her because she doesn¡¯t have a maiden home to rely on. If you dare to restrict her freedom like the other day, I¡¯lle to your door to beat you up!¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face was tense as he said coldly, ¡°You won¡¯t have the chance.¡± He wanted nothing more than to hold Serenity in his arms now. How could he bear to bully her? ¡°Seren, tell me if he treats you badly. I¡¯ll seek justice for you. Also, you still need to change the way you talk to me, Zachary. If you don¡¯t speak to me politely, it means you don¡¯t respect Serenity¡¯s maiden home. It also means that your love for her isn¡¯t deep enough.¡± Zachary was speechless. He really wanted to cuss! The Stones were all the same. Clive was like this too. Elisa walked away smugly as if she had just won the battle. ¡°Seren, I respect your maiden family. Elisa is just deliberately trying to drive a wedge between us. She wants us to separate.¡± Serenity looked at him and said, ¡°Elisa told me many things about you before you arrived, but none of it was her trying to drive a wedge between us. Don¡¯t judge her with your own mean measure again. Elisa is a very good girl.¡± After saying that, she took the bag containing the topical medicine from his hand, walked past him, and left. Zachary was itching to know what Elisa said to Serenity. He silently followed Serenity out of the hospital. Jim and the others were waiting at the entrance. When they saw the young coupleing out, they came forward and respectfully greeted Serenity. Serenity stopped, but she did not say anything and started walking again. Zachary saw that she had no intention of getting into his car. With a despondent face, he instructed Jim, ¡°Drive your missus back. I¡¯ll go back to the office.¡± ¡°Yes, sir.¡± Jim knew that the young couple had not made up yet and did not dare say anything more. He quickly got into the car and drove to catch up to Serenity. Zachary watched from afar as Serenity finally got into Jim¡¯s car before feeling relieved. Fortunately, she did not refuse his arrangement. Zachary returned to the office and ordered Mr. Chaplin to send all the documents he needed to handle to his room. Then, he shut himself inside and forbade anyone to enter and disturb him. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Even Josh and Callum were turned away. Serenity went back to the bookstore. Her hand was injured, so she could no longer weave her crafts. She sat at the checkout counter, holding a pen while scribbling on paper. Jasmine came out with a te of sliced honeydew and ced them in front of Serenity. She sat down and handed Serenity a fork, saying, ¡°Don¡¯t bottle it up. You can talk to me.¡± ¡°Say, what else can I do besides opening a bookstore and an online store? Which industry will let me make arge amount of money quickly?¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°If you¡¯re lucky, then go buy lottery tickets, You¡¯ll have arge amount of money if you win a few million.¡± ¡°Forget it. I¡¯ve never been that lucky. A person has to get rich through their own earnings. It¡¯s no wonder I¡¯ve always been poor.¡± Chapter 896 Chapter 896 Chapter 896 ¡°Why are you suddenly thinking about making money? Do youck money now?¡± ¡°I only have a few hundred thousand in my savings ount. I don¡¯tck money, but I¡¯m not considered rich either. Elisa said a lot of things to me. I need to think about the reality gap between Zachary and me.¡± Jasmine asked, ¡°Are you not angry at him anymore?¡± ¡°Whether or not I¡¯m angry, I still have to think about my future with him.¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°I just wanted to find an ordinary man to marry. How did I jump into such arge pit? Now, I can¡¯t climb back out. Elisa said that even if I sue for divorce, I won¡¯t be able to leave if Zachary doesn¡¯t let me.¡± ¡°If you dare to sue for divorce, he¡¯ll imprison you in the house for the rest of your life.¡± ¡°Stop bringing that up. It¡¯ll only make me angrier.¡± Serenity forked a piece of honeydew¡¯ to eat. ¡°This melon is quite sweet.¡¯ ¡°Of course it is. I picked it out myself. At first, we were all worried that Elisa would turn against you when she found out, but judging by her reaction, she¡¯s still rational. Although she¡¯s also angry, she doesn¡¯t me you for it. ¡°If Elisa wants to me anyone, she can only me the fact that Mr. York and her weren¡¯t meant to be. After all, Mr. York never liked her or gave her any promises. She has the right to like Mr. York, and he has the right to reject her. ¡°You just need to consider the reality between you and Mr. York. You don¡¯t have to worry about anything else.¡± Serenity put down her fork and sighed again. ¡°Let me think about it on my own.¡± They were all trying to persuade her. ¡°Okay, I won¡¯t say anything. You mull over it yourself. Besides, I¡¯ll support you no matter what decision you make. Aren¡¯t you eating anymore?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not hungry.¡± Jasmine did not force her. People who were hurt by love were like this. Some stuffed themselves, while others stopped eating and sleeping. The sky gradually darkened. There was the sound of footsteps outside. Soon, they saw Grandma May and Tania walking in. ¡°Grandma May.¡± Jasmine had never seen Tania before and did not dare greet her. Serenity stood up. ¡°Nana, Mom, what are you doing here?¡± Jasmine realized that the person beside Grandma May was Zachary¡¯s mother, also known as Serenity¡¯s mother-inw. ¡°We came here to apologize to you. Seren, the person who lied to you first was me. If you want to me anyone, then me me. What happened to your hand?¡± Grandma May hade over to apologize to Serenity personally. She was the first person to lie to Serenity. ¡°I identally cut myself with the scissors. It¡¯s no big deal.¡± Serenity invited the two women to sit down. Jasmine poured them some water and sensibly walked away. Grandma May told Serenity how she had forced and coaxed Zachary to marry Serenity in order to repay her for her kindness. Finally, she said apologetically, ¡°Seren, Zack lied to you because I started it. If you want to me anyone, then me me. ¡°That¡¯s all I have to say. I won¡¯t disturb you anymore. We¡¯ll go back now.¡± Serenity stood up to see them off. Grandma May and Tania told her not to bother, but she insisted. After sending them off, Serenity called Zachary. He answered as soon as the line rang. ¡°Zachary,e pick me up after work. Let¡¯s go home and have a talk.¡± Zachary was so nervous his palms were mmy, and he quickly said, ¡°Okay.¡±Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 897 Chapter 897 Chapter 897 After calling Zachary, Serenity told her sister that she would be going back to Brynfield in the evening to have a talk with him before returning to the rented apartment. Liberty said, ¡°That¡¯s fine. It doesn¡¯t matter howte you are. I¡¯ll leave the door open. for you.¡± After the phone call, Serenity did not go back to the store immediately. She walked alone on the streets along the river in front of the school. Her mind slowly calmed down as the cold wind blew. The most important problem in front of them was not the question of whether she was angry or not, but the reality gap between them. As she walked, she realized that she had walked quite a ways. She stopped and turned to walk back. When she turned around, she saw that Jasmine was following her from afar. She paused before walking toward her friend. ¡°I¡¯ll get over it.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°I know you will. I just figured that I should follow you so I can hear you if you shout if you need anything.¡± Serenity looked at Jasmine for a moment and suddenly hugged her. She said gratefully, ¡°Jasmine, I¡¯m so lucky to have you as my best friend.¡± ¡°I could say the same thing.¡± Jasmine patted Serenity¡¯s back and let her go so they could walk side by side. She asked, ¡°Shall we go back to eat?¡± ¡°I told Zachary to pick me up,¡± Serenity answered. Jasmine looked at her. ¡°Have you decided to forgive him?¡± ¡°I¡¯m just angry at him. I don¡¯t hate him. What I should face now is the gap between us. I want to have a good talk with him.¡± Jasmine hummed. ¡°Yeah, you should talk it out. Communication is very important between people.¡± Serenity nodded. Chapter 597 2/2 Zachary came quickly. Josh followed him over. He came to invite Jasmine to dinner. Jasmine and he watched Serenity get into Zachary¡¯s car. When Zachary¡¯s car drove. away, Josh nudged Jasmine¡¯s arm and asked, ¡°Have they made up? Zachary looked like he had just won the lottery when he came out of the office. It looked like he might start floating.¡± ¡°The money he gets from winning the lottery can¡¯tpare to his savings. What does he have to be excited about? Seren is only willing to talk to him now. They won¡¯t reconcile that quickly, but the problem has to be solved. Like I said, Serenity. won¡¯t run away from her problems. She just needs some time to calm down and think about the solutions.¡± Josh praised her. ¡°Yes, yes, yes, you¡¯re the most beautifuldy. Everything you say is right.¡± Jasmine red at him. ¡°That sounds like sarcasm, not apliment. When have I evermented on my appearance? Besides, I won¡¯t dare talk about my face in front of bigwigs like you.¡± ¡°I was wrong. I shouldn¡¯t have said that.¡± Joshughed. ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll treat you to Italian.¡± ¡°Call Drake.¡± Josh was speechless and reluctantly said, ¡°Sure.¡± Well, it was his fault for going for the brother¨Cinw route first. Now, his future brother Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. -inw had be the third wheel. He shot himself in the foot. Back at Brynfield, Zachary said, ¡°You watch TV first, Seren. I¡¯ll go cook.¡± Zachary entered the house, took off his suit jacket, and walked straight into the kitchen. He took the apron from the hook and put it on. ¡°We can talk after dinner.¡± After receiving Serenity¡¯s call, Zachary called Mrs. Lane and told her to send groceries over. However, he did not let her cook as he wanted to cook by himself. Serenity did not say anything and silently went to the balcony to water the flowers. Zachary suddenly rushed out and reminded her nervously, ¡°Don¡¯t let water get to your hand, Seren. It¡¯ll get infected.¡± Chapter 898 Chapter 898 Chapter 898 Serenity held the watering can in her right hand and raised it when she turned to look at him. She was showing him that she was using her right hand. She injured her left hand. ¡°It¡¯s tiring if you only use one hand too. I told Mrs. Lane to take good care of these flowers. You don¡¯t have to worry about them.¡± Zachary took the watering can from her hand and did not allow her to water the flowers. He pulled her to the swing chair and pressed her down to the seat. ¡°Here¡¯s your favorite spot. Just sit here and swing. I¡¯ll go into the house and get you a coat.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not cold.¡± However, Zachary went inside as if he did not hear her. He brought her a jacket and wanted to put it on her, but she refused, so he draped it over her legs instead. That way, she would not feel cold when sitting on the swing chair. ¡°I¡¯ll go cook now. Call me if you need anything. Don¡¯t touch the water.¡± Zachary exhorted her again and returned to the kitchen to prepare their dinner. Serenity sat on the swing chair for a moment, then got up and went into the house. She watched quietly at the kitchen door as Zachary cooked dinner. As she looked at him, she remembered bits and pieces of the past. Putting aside the fact that he hid his identity from her, he took great care of her in everyday life. There had been something sweet between them. Serenity watched him for a while before turning away. She went to the sofa, sat down, and turned on the TV, but she could not focus on the program. From time to time, Zachary would poke his head out to see what she was doing. He was very nervous. Neither did he know what she wanted to talk to him about, nor the decision she would make. Heughed at himself in his heart. His calm and collectedness flew out the window after meeting Serenity. Over an hourter, the simple dinner prepared by Zachary was ready. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. There were three dishes and one soup¨Call Serenity¡¯s favorites. Chapter 298 He served Serenity a bowl of soup and filled her te with food before handing her the te. Serenity looked at him and said, ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t treat me too well.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t be silly. You¡¯re my wife. Who should I treat well if not you?¡± ¡°I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll let you down.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay. I can ept it no matter if it¡¯s hope or disappointment. As long as you don¡¯t mention divorce and don¡¯t leave me, I can ept anything. I can afford to wait however long you want to stay at your sister¡¯s ce. ¡°Seren, as long as you remember that you have me as your husband who¡¯s waiting for you toe back home, I¡¯m content with that.¡± Serenity served him some food. ¡°Eat first.¡± Zachary felt overwhelmed by favor. ¡°I¡¯ll do it myself, honey. Your hand is injured. I should be the one taking care of you.¡± ¡°I injured my left hand. It doesn¡¯t affect my right hand from taking food. Eat. You¡¯ve been busy the whole time sinceing back. You need to eat more.¡± She put more food on his te as she spoke. Zachary was nervous. The better she treated him, the more nervous and scared he was. He did not know what awaited him. After the meal, Zachary went ahead and washed the dishes. He deliberately dawdled and spent another hour cleaning up before walking over to sit across from Serenity. With a serious expression like an elementary school student in ss, he said, ¡°Give me your verdict, Seren. I¡¯m ready.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°I just want to talk with you. You make it sound like I¡¯m sending you to the guillotine.¡± He looked at her deeply and said, ¡°To me, this moment feels exactly like that.¡± Chapter 899 Chapter 899 Chapter 899 ¡°I was really angry when I first found out that you lied to me¡­ Forget it. Let¡¯s put that aside for now. Look at yourself. It¡¯s like your hair is standing on end. I¡¯m still angry, and I haven¡¯t calmed down yet, but everyone is speaking up for you and pleading your case.¡± Even her best friend, who was on her side, spoke up for him. ¡°You have the right to be angry, Seren. It was my fault. I shouldn¡¯t have concealed it from you for so long. I couldn¡¯t even confess to you in person and chose another way to let you find out¡­ It was Remy who suggested that!¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. If Remy were here, he would say, ¡°You were the one who came to me for advice.¡± After a moment of silence, Serenity said, ¡°In the end, it¡¯s because you don¡¯t trust me enough.¡± ¡°Seren, I admit that I used to distrust you and guard against you. I thought you were after my money. Now, I absolutely believe in your character.¡± Serenity was silent again and looked up at him. With a heart split between hesitance and certainty, she asked, ¡°Zachary, can we sign another contract?¡± Before Zachary could speak, she continued, ¡°I got angry after finding out your true identity, but that anger is secondary now. What I should consider more is the gap. between us. You¡¯re the eldest young master of the York family. You¡¯re someone who was born into a family that has assets worth billions, but I¡¯m just an ordinary woman with no parents. My rtives are all sorry excuses for humans too. I have no skills, and I¡¯mpletely mismatched with you in every aspect.¡± ¡°Serenity!¡± Zachary interjected solemnly. you! I He said grimly, ¡°No matter what your status is, I¡¯ve decided that it has to be don¡¯t look down on you. As long as I think you¡¯re a match for me, then you are. Don¡¯t put yourself down like that.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not putting myself down. I¡¯m just stating the facts.¡± Serenity had never been one to belittle herself. ¡°Seren, I don¡¯t need you to have any skills. It¡¯s enough if I¡¯m capable. I can support a family. I support you. In the future, I can also afford to raise our children. With the money I earn, I can support all of us even if we give birth to a ser team. ¡°You don¡¯t need to put pressure on yourself. I don¡¯t need you to support the family. I¡¯mpletely fine with keeping the status quo.¡± Zachary had earned more money than he could spend. He could support the entire family single¨C handedly, so there was no need for Serenity to have any skills, nor did she need to earn money to share the burden. She just needed to stay by his side and not think about divorce. ¡°Seren, you might not know this, but everyone in our family receives an allowance from the family trust fund every month. You¡¯re the eldest missus of the York family, so yours amount to 600,000 each month. ¡°That¡¯s just from the family fund. I can also give you pocket money every month. Nana and my mom will definitely give you too. You don¡¯t have to worry about money at all.¡± As Zachary spoke, he took out his wallet and pulled out a ck card, cing it in front of Serenity. ¡°In our small home, you¡¯re in charge. Everything you say isw. This is my ck card, but you keep it. Use it however you want. In short, with me around, you never have to worry about money.¡± Serenity nced at the ck card and then looked at him. Did he think she was worried about money? ¡°Zachary, if our marriage is to continue, do you want me to be a canary you keep in a cage, or do you want me to stand and walk beside you?¡± Zachary stared at her in silence. Chapter 900 Chapter 900 Chapter 900 ¡°What I mean is, give me a little time. I¡¯ll try to see if I can fit into your world. If I can¡¯t, I won¡¯t force myself, and you shouldn¡¯t force me either. An unequal marriage won¡¯tst. ¡°You just fell in love with me, so your feelings are especially strong now. You think you can ept everything about me, and you don¡¯t care what my status is. ¡°As time passes, you¡¯ll feel that I can¡¯t help you with anything. We have nothing inmon. I won¡¯t understand if you talk about finance, stocks, and investment. If you take me to socialize with your friends, otherdies will be able to make conversation easily with you all, but what can I talk about to you? ¡°Do I talk about the weather? Or ask what you had for lunch? ¡°Eventually, you¡¯ll feel that I¡¯m a disgrace, and that I¡¯m not as good as your friends¡® wives. It¡¯s because they¡¯re on the same level as you with simr social circles, so they share simr insights and conversation topics. ¡°You can say that no one will dare do anything to me with you around, but I¡¯ll feel inferior. I don¡¯t want to be a canary in a cage whose only job is to be clothed and fed by you. I want to be the woman who walks alongside you. ¡°However, your starting point is so high up that I can¡¯t even catch up with you. That¡¯s why I think we have to start over. Give me the chance to at least try.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was dark. ¡°Why do you care that much about how others see you? I told you that I can support you and raise a family. You just need to keep the status quo and not care about what people say. They¡¯re just jealous that you can marry into the York family and be my wife.. ¡°My friends won¡¯t look down on you. When we get together, I¡¯ll remind them in advance not to talk about topics that you¡¯re not well¨Cversed in. We¡¯ll just chat about everyday life. We¡¯ll talk about what we ate and where we went to have fun, okay? I can do all that for you. ¡°Seren, I know your sister¡¯s failed marriage had a great impact on you. You¡¯re afraid I¡¯ll be a scumbag like Hank, right? Don¡¯t worry, I promise you that I won¡¯t! Even if you turn fat in the future, I won¡¯t dislike you. ¡°I love you as a person. Be it your strengths or ws, I can ept all of them. ¡°What contract do you want us to sign? Are you going to terminate our marriage if you can¡¯t fit into my circle? You¡¯re just putting up a front. In truth, you just want to leave me. You¡¯re still angry at me for lying to you.¡± Serenity almost lost her temper several times, but she held back. She desperately told herself, ¡®Endure, Seren. Endure!¡® His domineeringness and stubbornness were not something she could change with just a few words. He did not think that far. He only knew that he was the eldest young master of the York family. With him around, she could do whatever she wanted in Wiltspoon. He only thought about how he had enough money to raise her and their family. All she had to do was continue being his wife. There was no need for her to worry about anything else. She was being treated like a canary kept in a gilded cage. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Nevertheless, Serenity admitted that her sister¡¯s failed marriage had greatly affected her. Hank and her sister met twelve years ago, were in love for seven years, and married for more than three years. They had been together longer than Zachary and Serenity knew each other. Hank had treated her sister extremely well before. Everything that Zachary was saying now, Hank said the same to Liberty. He said he could afford to support her and their little family. In the end? They exchanged vows to be with each other till death do them part, but they ended up divorcing just seven years in. Chapter 901 Chapter 901 Chapter 901 Serenity also admitted that her inws were very good people. However, she could tell that her mother¨Cinw was not too satisfied with her. There was no conflict yet between Serenity and her mother¨Cinw, but as they spend more time together in the future, would she experience the same thing her aunt did in her youth? What Serenity wanted was to be truly acknowledged by her inws! ¡°Let¡¯s leave it at this, Zachary. It¡¯ste now. You should rest early. I¡¯m going back.¡± Serenity suppressed her anger and did not quarrel with Zachary. She could not convince him, and he could not understand what it was that she wanted. It was a waste of breath to continue the discussion. Serenity felt powerless. She felt that if they continued talking, they would just end up quarreling again. In fact, the fight would most likely escte and worsen their rtionship further. She came here to settle their issues, not to fight with him. Zachary stood up and grabbed her arm, saying in a low voice, ¡°Serenity, I won¡¯t sign any contract with you. We¡¯re already married. In this life, we¡¯re husband and wife.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t want to sign, then fine. Rest early.¡± Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity wanted to move his hand away, but he was too strong. She was not strong enough to pry his hand away with just one hand, so he continued to hold her. Zachary saw her flippant attitude and felt that she did not take what he said to heart at all. She was still thinking of doing what she said. He was angry, but when he saw her injured left hand, his temper extinguished instantly. She got hurt because she was affected by what he said. She got injured because of his bad attitude. The injury was on her body, but he felt the pain in his heart. The couple had different views on the matter. He could not convince her, and she could not convince him either, but he could not fly into a rage lest he hurt her again. ¡°Seren, don¡¯t go back to your sister¡¯s ce tonight, okay? It¡¯s already sote. Your sister must be tired after working all day. Let her rest early with Sonny.¡± Charter 901 2/2 Zachary did not want to let her go. Even if she did not share a bed with him, he would feel at ease as long as she stayed under the same roof as him.. He felt she could not give him a sense of security while she felt he could not provide her with a sense of trust. s! ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll send you back to your sister¡¯s ce after breakfast tomorrow. I won¡¯t treat you like before. That time, I only went crazy and did that to you because I was too afraid. Forgive me for my impulsiveness, okay?¡± ¡°I told my sister that I would be going back. ¡°I want to go back, Zachary. Let me go.¡± Serenity looked at him with calm eyesced with stubbornness. Zachary pursed his lips and looked at her for a long time, then finally let go of her arm. ¡°I¡¯ll drive you there.¡± He picked up the car keys. Serenity did not refuse him. She was afraid her continuous refusals would anger him. It was not worth the risk. The young couple walked out of the house in silence and went downstairs together. No one spoke a single word. When they arrived downstairs, Zachary chose to drive the national MPV. She was used to sitting in that car. Serenity did not say anything. When she sat in his MPV, she was reminded of her ridiculous foolishness. She thought he was a simple sryman just because he drove an ordinary car. She did not even imagine he simply switched to an ordinary car in order to hide his identity from her. Grandma May and the other members of the York family all drove ordinary cars when they appeared in front of her. Furthermore, all of them were new cars. Serenity turned her head to look at the night scene outside the window, trying not to think about him and his entire family lying to her. Zachary drove very slowly, thinking that he could spend more time with her that way. Chapter 902 Chapter 902 Chapter 902 172 No matter how slowly he drove, the car soon reached Liberty¡¯s ce. Liberty did not want to be too far away from her sister when she was looking for a rented ce, so the apartment was nearby Brynfield. Zachary stopped the car. ¡°We¡¯re here.¡± This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Serenity opened the car door, said goodbye to Zachary, and got out of the car. ¡°I¡¯ll take you upstairs.¡± ¡°No need. You go back. Drive safe and have a good rest at home tomorrow. You don¡¯t look too good.¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes burned into her, and he asked in a low voice, ¡°Seren, you still care about me, right?¡± He tried to hold her hand, but she simply turned and entered the building. Zachary stood at the entrance and watched her go up. In the end, he did not walk her to the door. He had his pride too. He had bowed to her several times, but never once she epted¡­ After a long time, he turned and went back to the car. He called Josh and Duncan and asked them to go to Neon Nights for a drink. After the call, he drove away and went straight to Neon Nights. Josh and Duncan arrived before him. The two asked for a private room and ordered beers while waiting for him. When Zachary came in and saw the two beers they ordered, he eximed, ¡°Are there no good drinks in this bar, or do you not have enough money to buy good booze? Why are you drinking beer? When it comes to alcohol, the stronger the better! No one is going home sober tonight!¡± Tomorrow was the weekend, so he could sleep the whole day away. Josh said, ¡°I¡¯ll apany you guys, but I won¡¯t drink. One of us has to remain sober. Otherwise, who will send you home? ¡°Also, I have to apany Jasmine to her aunt¡¯s house for dinner tomorrow, so I Chapter 902 212 can¡¯t drink or get drunk.¡± Duncan nudged Josh¡¯s arm and asked nosily, ¡°You¡¯re already meeting Ms. Sox¡¯s family? You¡¯re progressing quickly.¡± ¡°I wish. Jasmine likes to take it slow. Mrs. Lowe found her another blind date¨Can executive in Lowe Enterprise. Calling her over for dinner is just a front for her to go on a blind date with that guy. ¡°How dare anyone try to go after a woman I have my eyes on? No matter how exceptional the other man is, how can hepare to me?¡± He wanted to let everyone know that he was pursuing Jasmine so that the Sox family would stop arranging blind dates for her. Duncanughed. ¡°There really aren¡¯t many people who canpare to you.¡± Zachary ordered a few bottles of spirits. He sat on the sofa and started drinking. ¡°You were happy as ark when you went to pick up your wife. What happened? You guys haven¡¯t made up yet? Why are you drinking?¡± Zachary did not say anything and silently drank his liquor. Duncan apanied him and drank two sses, but Josh did not touch a drop of alcohol. ¡°Zachary, talk to us if you have something on your chest. I might not be able to help you, but Josh is here. Having him help you analyze is better than you bashing your head against the wall.¡± Duncan stopped Zachary from drinking thest bottle and said with a frown, ¡°Stop drinking. You¡¯ll drink yourself into aa at this rate.¡± Zachary shook Duncan¡¯s hand off, picked up the bottle, and poured himself another ss. However, instead of drinking from the ss, he lifted the bottle and drank straight from the mouth. He downed the bottle until it was empty. His grip loosened and the bottle fell to the ground and shattered. Then, he suddenly swept all the bottles and sses on the table to the floor. They shattered with a loud crash. The waiter at the door was startled and entered the room to check on them. When he saw that it was Josh and the others, he hurriedly withdrew again and closed the door. Chapter 903 Chapter 903 Chapter 903 After Zachary swept away all the bottles and sses, he slumped down on the table and mumbled, ¡°Serenity, Serenity¡­ It¡¯s not like it has to be you¡­¡± Josh and Duncan did not hear what he said clearly at first. He murmured repeatedly, and it was only when Josh leaned into his mouth did he hear Zachary say, ¡°It¡¯s not like it has to be you, Serenity.¡± ¡°What is he saying?¡± Duncan asked curiously when he saw Josh¡¯s odd look. Josh stood up straight, looked at the drunken Zachary, and said to Duncan, ¡°Since his sudden marriage, he has gotten drunk several times because of Serenity.¡± In the beginning, when Zachary and Serenity signed the agreement, Zachary was depressed at Serenity¡¯s indifferent attitude. Back then, he also asked his two friends out for a drink and got drunk, and it was Jim who sent him home. That was also the first time Jim appeared in front of Serenity as a substitute driver. ¡°He said ¡®it doesn¡¯t have to be Serenity¡®. Hah!¡± Joshughed at his drunk friend. ¡°Why don¡¯t you say that to Serenity¡¯s face? What¡¯s the point of saying that to us here? I dare you to go to Serenity and say that you don¡¯t need her.¡± Zachary suddenly stood up, grabbed Josh¡¯s shoulders, and shook him fiercely while. yelling, ¡°What else do you want from me, Serenity? I was wrong, so I apologized to you. I also let you go back to your sister. ¡°What else do you want? I¡¯m telling you, as long as I¡¯m willing, there¡¯s a whole line of women out there who want to marry me! You¡¯re not my only choice!¡± Josh was dizzy from being shaken. When he heard Zachary spewing nonsense. he could not help but say, ¡°You¡¯re right. You can divorce her and go marry someone else then.¡± ¡°In your dreams! I¡¯ll never divorce! You¡¯re mine! You¡¯ll be mine for the rest of your life, and I¡¯m yours! I just want you¡­ I only want you. I won¡¯t let go of you. I won¡¯t sign a contract. Don¡¯t mention the contract to me again¡­ I already burned it and flushed it down the drain. You can only be my wife¡­¡± After viciously shaking Josh, Zachary fell back to the couch like a deted ball. He slumped against the couch and closed his eyes, but he continued to mutter, Serenity¡­ Serenity¡­ I¡¯ll support you. I can afford to support you¡­. Chapter 103 212 ¡°Don¡¯t leave me¡­ I need you¡­ Mine. You¡¯re mine¡­¡± Zachary¡¯s mumbling became softer until there was no more sound. He fell asleep. Josh and Duncan exchanged a look. Josh said, ¡°Thank God he didn¡¯t take me for Serenity.¡± Duncan asked, ¡°Were you afraid that he would kiss you?¡± ¡°I was terrified that he would take me for Serenity and kiss me, then force himself on me. You don¡¯t know how scared I was. Say, do you think I should just y dead or fight back if he forces himself on me?¡± Duncan was speechless. He looked at Zachary and said, ¡°This isn¡¯t the Zachary I know.¡± Josh said, ¡°Don¡¯t say that. You¡¯ll be like him too when you fall in love with a woman and fight with her. Maybe you¡¯ll even be crazier than him.¡± ¡°The woman who can make me fall in love isn¡¯t in this world yet. I¡¯ll just watch as you guys fall in love, get married, and be fathers.¡± Duncan had seen countless women, but there was no one who made his heart skip a beat and made him want to settle down. His best friends both found a woman they liked. Although they had sweet times, there was also trouble. The Zachary York in the past was always calm and collected. He had never lost his cool like this. It was better to remain single. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You¡¯re exaggerating. Maybe the woman who can make your heart flutter is right next to you. Anyway, help me pick this drunkard up and get to my car. I¡¯ll send him home. Can you take a cab back by yourself?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± Duncan helped pick Zachary up. ¡°He¡¯spletely wasted. There¡¯s no one to take care of him if you bring him home. He¡¯ll catch a cold if he lies on the ground all night.¡± Chapter 904 Chapter 904 Chapter 904 ¡°I¡¯ll send him to Serenity¡¯s ce. She¡¯ll take care of him.¡± Josh wanted to help his best friend out. Duncan reminded him, ¡°Zachary is drunk and spewing nonsense. If he said those words he said earlier in front of Serenity, it would be adding insult to injury.¡± This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. Josh paused. ¡°I¡¯ll send him to Wildridge Manor.¡± Duncan had no problem with that. The three of them left the bar. Duncan helped Zachary into Josh¡¯s car, said a few words, and watched Josh drive away. Then, he called for a cab for himself. On the way back to York¡¯s residence, Zachary asionally yelled a few times. One moment, it was ¡°Serenity, I love you. Don¡¯t leave me.¡± The next moment, it was, ¡± What else do you want from me? It¡¯s not like I need you.¡± He kept repeating those words. It was a fight between his love and ego. His love prevailed one moment, and his ego the next. More than an hourter, Josh¡¯s car arrived at Wildridge Manor. He called Grandma May in advance, so she waited for him at the entrance of the house. ¡°Grandma May.¡± Josh parked the car and called out to the old woman. ¡°Sorry for bothering you when it¡¯s sote.¡± ¡°No, I¡¯m sorry for troubling you to send Zack back thiste.¡± Grandma May told the bodyguards to help Zachary out of the car. When she saw how he was so intoxicated that he could not even walk, she asked Josh, ¡°How much did that brat drink?¡± ¡°A few bottles. He got so drunk that he started talking nonsense, so I didn¡¯t dare send him to Serenity. I was afraid she¡¯d get angrier if she heard what he said.¡± ¡°What did he say?¡± Josh did not conceal it and told Grandma May the absurdity that Zachary said. Grandma May snorted. ¡°I¡¯ll call him a man if he has the balls to say that in front of Serenity.¡± ¡°Grandma May, Zachary is just depressed and venting. When he sobers up tomorrow, he¡¯ll cling to Serenity again like gum.¡± Grandma May said, ¡°In vino veritas. You should look up what that means.¡± Josh was speechless. Fortunately, he did not send Zachary to Serenity. Otherwise, like Grandma May, Serenity would think that Zachary was speaking his hidden thoughts after drinking. ¡°Do you want toe in for a ss of water before you go?¡± ¡°No need, Grandma May. I¡¯ll leave now. I have ns tomorrow.¡± Grandma May was aware that Josh was pursuing Jasmine and smiled. ¡°All right. You go back first.¡± After Josh left, she ordered the bodyguards, ¡°Move a deck chair to the swimming pool and let Zack lie there for tonight. The cold will help him sober up.¡± ¡°Old Mrs. York,¡± a bodyguard protested. Grandma May¡¯s expression fell. ¡°Did you not hear what I said? Since he likes to drown his sorrows in alcohol, I¡¯ll help him out. Do as I say. No matter what ident happens tomorrow, he won¡¯t dare do anything to you with me around.¡± Chapter 905 Chapter 905 Chapter 905 What would Zachary do? He was dreaming after passing out drunk. In his dream, he was fighting Serenity fiercely, and he shouted at her, ¡°It¡¯s not that I need you, Serenity. I can toss you away any time. Don¡¯t regret it when that happens!¡± Serenity looked at him coldly and then turned to leave. ¡°Serenity! You¡¯ll never leave me! You¡¯re mine! I need you!¡± His instinctive reaction was to pull her back and not let her go. He pulled her and held her tightly, then lowered his head to her for a furious kiss as if trying to sear himself onto her¡­ ¡°Ssh-¡± When Zachary was fiercely entangled with Serenity in his dream, he flipped over and tumbled out of the deck chair. He fell into the pool. The cold water instantly engulfed his body. His dream shattered, and the zing fire in him that had ignited was extinguished the moment he fell into the pool. F*ck! It was freezing! There was so much water! Why was he in the water?! Zachary was caught off guard when he fell into the pool and choked on two mouthfuls of water. When he came to his senses, he hurriedly swam to the opposite side and climbed out. Swears spilled from his mouth. ¡°What¡¯s going on here? Who threw me into the pool?¡± He wiped the water droplets off his face and roared. The lights around the pool glowed softly. It was peaceful and quiet. No one responded to his roar because there was no one around the pool. Chapter 905 There was only a deck chair on the other side along with a nket that had fallen. Half of the nket dipped into the pool while the other half remained dry. Zachary swore again. Even without asking, he knew that this was the York residence. That day, he swam in this very same pool and forced his nana out of feigning sickness. There was no one except Nana who had the guts to get someone to ce him on the edge of the pool. He was just depressed and went drinking. How could Nana do this to him? Zachary sobered up the moment he fell into the pool. He walked around the pool, went back to the deck chair, and threw it into the pool. He also kicked the nket that was used to cover him into the water. Then, he walked into the house with sopping clothes. The lights in the lounge were still lit. Zachary entered and saw his nana sitting on the couch. With her reading sses, she leisurely read the newspaper. Next to her was her walking cane, but she mostly used it to whack her grandchildren. ¡°Oh, what happened? Why did our eldest young mastere back all wet? Did you go meet Poseidon for a game of chess?¡± Zachary had a dark expression and said nothing. Water kept dripping from his clothes. When he stopped, arge puddle soon formed on the ground beneath him. ¡°Did Poseidon not tell you to stay and be his son¨Cinw? Besides, you said you didn¡¯t need Serenity.¡± Zachary frowned and walked over with a sullen face. He stood in front of his nana and dripped water all over the ground. Grandma May put down the newspaper, picked up her walking cane, and swung it at Zachary. Zachary jumped and took several steps back. ¡°Nana!¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Stand back. Don¡¯t pee on my feet.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not urine, Nana! It¡¯s water!¡± Chapter 906 Chapter 906 Chapter 906 The scowl on Zachary¡¯s face could not be any more grimacing. Nevertheless, he did not have the nerve to go ahead to face another beating from Nana¡¯s cane. Taking his nana¡¯s cynical remark to heart, Zachary callously retorted, ¡± Nana, I never said Serenity¡¯s not the only girl out there for me.¡± There was no way he would say such a thing. Serenity was the only one for him. He did not want anyone but Serenity. ¡°So you never said that?¡± Stumped, Zachary took a moment before uttering, ¡°I might have said it in my dreams. How did you know, Nana?¡± Was it possible that it did not happen in dreand? He had a huge fight with Serenity and said the unthinkable in a fit of rage. The rage somehow inmed something else in him too¡­. ¡°Nana, I¨CI had a lot to drink. What did I do to Serenity while intoxicated?¡± If he was drunk to use force on Serenity¡­. Jesus! Zachary had to stop his thoughts from spiraling there. Alcohol could really mess things up! He was wasted. Grandma May put down her cane and said, ¡°How am I supposed to know what you did to Serenity? You were rambling on after downing a few bottles of liquor. I thought you could use some help to sober up. How do you feel? Is your mind clear now?¡± Zachary fell silent before saying, ¡°I¡¯m sober.¡± Grandma May¡¯s method of sobering him up could end up fatal if his waking came toote. He would have to wait to reconcile with Serenity in Heaven then. ¡°Can your problems be solved by drowning your sorrows?¡± Zachary shook his head. ¡°At least I can forget my troubles for a moment.¡± Chapter 906 211 ¡°Are your troubles still here now that you¡¯re awake? Or does it feel worse? You can say anything and do anything when you¡¯re drunk. You might think it¡¯s a dream, but you could be acting it out in real life.¡± Zachary turned as white as a sheet. He nervously asked, ¡°What happened to Serenity, Nana?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Grandma May¡¯s tactic of intimidation worked. However, the olddy had no clue how Serenity was doing because the person who drove her wasted grandson homest night was Josh and not her granddaughter¨Cinw. Zachary turned on his heel to leave. ¡°Come back. What time do you think it is? She¡¯s going to give you an attitude if you wake her at this hour.¡± It was five o¡¯clock in the morning. It was not even the break of dawn. ¡°Also, change out of your wet clothes. You look like you took a bath with your clothes on.¡± Turning a deaf ear, Zachary proceeded to walk out of there. ¡°Josh was the one who sent you homest night.¡± Grandma May had toe clean before her drunken grandson went to Serenity looking like that. By the looks of his pale face, Zachary must have done something to Serenity in his dreams. Serenity would probably be left scratching her head if her door was pounded first thing in the morning. Stopping short, Zachary turned around and brisked his pace back to Grandma May. ¡°Josh drove me home? Did I do anything to Josh?¡± Furious, Grandma May smacked him on the arm and chided, ¡°God knows what you did to Josh. Josh fled right after dropping you off. He didn¡¯t evene in for a drink.¡± Zachary looked sullen. Grandma asked him on purpose, ¡°Zachary, what happened in your dream? Josh is your most trusted and closest friend. He dumped you here before running away. Did you mistake him for Serenity?¡± ¡°Nana!¡± Zachary hissed through clenched teeth, ¡°I don¡¯t remember a thing!¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. His memory was stuck on asking his two best friends out to Neon Nights. He needed a drink after Serenity proposed signing a new contract with him. She needed time to get used to his status as the heir of the Yorks. While she would try to adapt to his world, she would not push herself if it was not for her. If it was not meant to be, Serenity hoped Zachary would not push the agenda and let it go too. Chapter 907 Chapter 907 Chapter 907 In other words, the couple would divorce and be set free if Serenity could not blend into his circle. Was marriage all about equal social standing? Zachary and his family never once turned their nose up at Serenity. Why must Serenity put pressure on herself and care about what other people think? He believed there was no gap between them! His word should be taken for it! ¡°You can pretend nothing happened since you don¡¯t remember. Oh, there¡¯s one thing you kept repeating all night¨C¡®Serenity, you¡¯re not the only one out there for me.¡® Are those your true thoughts? You should go and talk to her when the sunes out. What are you trying to aplish by making a huge fuss about it with us?¡± With his face falling, Zachary bitterly smiled. ¡°Seren said a lot to me, Nana. She doesn¡¯t want to be a defenseless girl, hiding under my wing. She wants to be a woman standing proudly next to me. ¡°Serenity wants to sharemon interests. It¡¯s not like we don¡¯t have anything inmon to talk about. I¡¯m not trying to raise her like a pet. She¡¯s my wife. There¡¯s nothing wrong with me wanting to take care of my wife financially, but she wants to get on by herself. ¡°There are so many women out there who want to marry me. I could have anyone in the world, but I don¡¯t want them. Serenity¡¯s the only one for me. Why can¡¯t she be like everyone else and enjoy all theBelongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. wealth and privilege I can give her? It makes sense that she wants to be self¨Creliant if I can¡¯t afford her or fail in my duties as a husband. ¡°I have the means to take care of her and the family. Yet, here she was, talking about being independent. She owns a shop and has an ie. Isn¡¯t that enough? I didn¡¯t stop her from running her business. I never asked her to stay at home and be a good wife. ¡°Don¡¯t I give her enough freedom? She¡¯s my wife. No one will have the audacity to disrespect her. No one will give her an attitude. She basically has Wiltspoon in the palm of her hand with me around. I bet Elisa said something to her that started this. I knew that woman was no good. She¡¯s out to drive a wedge between me and Serenity.¡± Poor Elisa, after all that good word she put in for Zachary. Chapter 907 The attack was uncalled for. ¡°You got so much anger in you because Serenity talked to you about that, and your true feelings were revealed when you were drunk?¡± Zachary responded, ¡°Nana, I didn¡¯t mean it. I clearly spoke in anger without thinking. You see how much I care for Serenity. I¡¯m the heir of the York family, for goodness¡® sake. I get everything I want. Sure, I made a mistake, but I apologized for it. She¡¯s still M¨CMy ego was bruised, that was why everything came out wrong. ¡°Nana, please don¡¯t tell that to Seren, or you¡¯ll blow your chances of having a great- granddaughter.¡± Talking about great¨Cgranddaughters, Zachary suddenly expectantly uttered, ¡°We tried to make babies after Seren¡¯s Aunt Flo left. I wonder if she¡¯s pregnant.¡± Grandma May looked at him and said, ¡°So what if she¡¯s pregnant? You don¡¯t share the same values. What¡¯s the point if you can¡¯tmunicate well? You¡¯re only going to fight. Zachary, you haven¡¯t gotten anything figured out. ¡°Do you know what kind of woman Serenity is?¡± Zachary fell silent. ¡°Go to her once you really get to know who she is. Otherwise, your rtionship will only go in circles. Get upstairs and change. You better stay put and give Serenity some space for now.¡± Zachary begrudgingly said, ¡°Why can¡¯t I visit my wife? What if someone steals her away?¡± ¡°The whole city knows she¡¯s Mrs. York. Who would dare cross the line and woo her?¡± Zachary then mumbled something under his breath. ¡°Are you going upstairs to change or what? No one¡¯s going to make you take a shot now if you catch a cold.¡± With a sour face, Zachary turned on his heels and went up the stairs. Did he really not get Serenity? Serenity felt that she did not deserve him because he was too wealthy. Nevertheless, what was his belonged to her too. Josh pulled up at the gate of the Soxes¡® residence. He got out of the car and checked himself out in the side mirror. Happy with his looks, Josh retrieved the gift he bought from the back seat. He walked to the front door and pressed the doorbell. The Soxes¡® watchdogs barked and sprung at the noise. Chapter 908 Chapter 908 Chapter 908 Seeing that it was Josh, the two hounds stopped barking and wagged their tails at him. Josh was often around the Soxes¡® residence in the name of hanging out with Drake. His frequent visits gave Mrs. Sox the wrong idea that Josh took a fancy to Drake, but it also drew him closer to the two hounds. Drake came to open the door. ¡°Are you here for me?¡± Josh answered with a smile, ¡°You wish. I¡¯m here for your sister.¡± Drake grinned. ¡°I found out yesterday that my mom thought you had a crush on me. Haha! That was hrious.¡± ¡°I¡¯m surprised Mrs. Sox took it the wrong way.¡± ¡°Well, you always came looking for me. Anyway, my sister¡¯s getting dressed upstairs. She said she doesn¡¯t care if youe, but she hasn¡¯t decided what to wear since getting up. Oh, women. It¡¯s one of those no¨Cmeans¨Cyes moments.¡± Josh told him off, ¡°Don¡¯t speak ill of your sister in front of me.¡± Drakemented, ¡°Are you on her side already?¡± ¡°Drake, is that Josh? Oh, it is Josh. Come on in.¡± Mrs. Sox waited at the door. Josh handed the gift over to Mrs. Sox and shyly uttered, ¡°Mrs. Sox, I wasn¡¯t sure what you and Mr. Sox like, so I bought a little something I thought was nice. I hope you¡¯d like it.¡± ¡°Oh, you didn¡¯t have to. Mr. Sox and I are happy enough that you came.¡± Well, more like relieved¨Ctheir single daughter had finally caught the eyes of a brilliant man. Here they thought their son might marry a man. It was all a misunderstanding. That This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. was another reason to feel relieved. Josh stepped into the house and met Mr. Sox. Josh shyly said hello. Mr. Sox returned a smile with a much friendlier look on his face. 22 Now that the air was cleared up, Mr. Sox suddenly saw Josh in a positive light. After gesturing for Josh to sit down, Mrs. Sox told her son, ¡°Tell your sister toe down. Josh is here. We should get going to your aunt¡¯s ce.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Drake rushed upstairs to call his sister. Mr. Sox handed Josh a cigarette. Waving his arm, Josh replied, ¡°I don¡¯t smoke, Mr. Sox.¡± Mrs. Soxplimented, ¡°That¡¯s a good habit. Jasmine doesn¡¯t like men who smoke.¡± Josh was well aware of the fact. He smoked but only on rare asions. Josh kept cigarettes and a lighter handy for frequent social engagements. Mrs. Sox poured Josh a drink before taking a seat in front of Josh. She looked at Josh with a smile and asked, ¡°Does your family know about you and Jasmine?¡± Josh thought to himself, ¡®Is the meeting between the parentsing up soon?¡® Bearing an embarrassed smile, Josh answered, ¡°I n to let my family know when I finally get Jasmine to be my girlfriend, Mrs. Sox.¡± He feared his family might scare Jasmine off with their overly keen friendliness. ¡°Okay. I have high hopes for you. You can do it. I have a gift for you. You¡¯ll get an even bigger present when you call me Mom.¡± Chapter 909 Chapter 909 Chapter 909 This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Josh said with a smile, ¡°I better work on it so I can get the bigger gift from you soon.¡± ¡°I heard that no gossip slips past your family,¡± Mr. Sox chimed in. Josh replied, ¡°That¡¯s true. Are you into gossip?¡± Mr. Sox uttered with a straight face, ¡°Gossip doesn¡¯t appeal to someone of my age, but you can share a little with me when we have nothing to do. I¡¯m fine with it.¡± Squealing at her husband, Mrs. Sox remarked, ¡°Jasmine takes after him.¡± Jasmine¡¯s love for the buzz and gossip came from her father. Josh happened to be the same type. He and Jasmine seemed destined together. God knew what embarrassing moments Jasmine¡¯s parents would share with Josh. while she was not around. Hence, Jasmine finally decided on a dress after standing in front of her wardrobe all day. Jasmine wore a dress, grabbing her phone on the way out. ¡°Get it together, Jas. Josh is downstairs.¡± Drake called her sister¡¯s attention to her bearing. She should walk like ady. Now that an eligible bachelor had the hots for his sister, Jasmine might scare Mr. Bucham away if she did not keep up with her appearance. Drake did not want to end up ving off his remaining years to look after his spinster sister. Despite being years younger than his sister, Drake was worried about his sister ever finding a man. Looking back, Jasmine said, ¡°We don¡¯t have privacy with him around. Why bother putting up an act?¡± Drake was speechless. With Josh¡¯s identity in mind, Drake had a mini heart attack. Would Josh dig into all his deepest and darkest secrets too? While Josh may be in the intelligence business, he was only interested in learning more about Drake¡¯s sister. Josh would only go as far as to get a feel of Drake¡¯s character and likings before Chapter pandering to Drake¡¯s needs. It was a strategy to win Drake¡¯s favor. It would not take long for Josh to get the girl if he got his future brother- and parents- inw on his side. By the looks of things, his future father¨Cinw appeared fond of Josh. Jasmine would probably be his by now if he hade clean sooner about his feelings. Josh was going to have dinner at the Lowes¡® as Jasmine¡¯s boyfriend. This was to stop Mrs. Lowe from introducing so¨Ccalled good men to Jasmine. These men had nothing on Josh! ¡°Can I have a word with you, Mr. Bucham?¡± Before they made a move, Jasmine pulled Josh to a corner and stuffed a wad of cash in Josh¡¯s hand. She whispered, ¡°Mr. Bucham, this is the payment for pretending to be my boyfriend.¡± Josh lowered his gaze at the money before picking his head up to meet her eyes. He smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Sox. This is what I¡¯m paid for. I promise I¡¯ll do a good job.¡± Stuffing the cash in his pocket, Josh wrapped his arms around her waist and grinned cunningly. ¡°Let¡¯s go, darling. We don¡¯t have to keep your parents waiting.¡± Jasmine was at a loss for words. ¡°No point paying if you don¡¯t get your money¡¯s worth. I must make sure I¡¯m more than up to your expectations. Come. Let¡¯s practice our kiss. Kissing is a normal thing for couples.¡± Josh lowered his head to kiss Jasmine, startling Jasmine into pushing him away. Putting her hands out, Jasmine said, ¡°Give me back the money. I¡¯m not renting a boyfriend anymore.¡± Josh gave her back the money. Although there was a smile on his face, his words came off as domineering. ¡°I¡¯ll bang you if you offer me money again. That¡¯s what you¡¯re paying me for.¡± Jasmine was lost for words. The man was not one to be messed with. With Josh joining along for dinner at the Lowes¡®, Mrs. Lowe soon found out that Josh was courting her niece. She was happy and embarrassed at the same time. The Buchams were higher up the socialdder than the Lowes. Her niece was luckier than her. While Josh was making his intentions known to Jasmine¡¯s family and friends, Zachary left Serenity alone under his nana¡¯s orders. Zachary put up with it for a week. During the week, Zachary unleashed his pent¨Cup emotions at work. Taking the brunt of it, the employees begged Josh to simmer Mr. York down. Otherwise, the employees would continue to suffer in Zachary¡¯s hands as the overtime would nevere to an end. Zachary was efficient when he put his mind to work. Even Josh could not keep up with him. Chapter 910 Chapter 910 Chapter 910 Zachary had no idea hismitment to work had caused distress to the entire office. It was Monday after he took seven days to cool off. He invited Serenity out at the start of a new week. The injury on Serenity¡¯s hand healed up well after seven days of rest. At least, she could now drive. Zachary asked to meet her at the presidential suite on the top floor of Wiltspoon Hotel. Serenity brought Sonny along. The little man was with her today because the facelift for Liberty¡¯s restaurant was nearingpletion. Since Liberty would be busy in theing days, she did not have time to look after Sonny. The responsibility of caring for Sonny fell on Serenity¡¯s shoulders. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Standing at the hotel entrance, Jim and his colleague watched as Serenity carried Sonny out of the car. Jim went ahead and respectfully said hello. ¡°Where¡¯s your boss?¡± ¡°Mr. Zachary is waiting for you on the top floor. Pleasee with us. Remaining deferential throughout, Jim and his colleague led Serenity into the hotel. A few minutester, Serenity entered the magnificent presidential suite with Sonny in her arms. With his back facing the door, Zachary stood by the window. The room bore a heavy stench of cigarettes. Zachary, who rarely ever smoked, had helped himself to multiple packs. Serenity noticed the ashtray, filled with cigarette butts on the coffee table. There was also a thick yellow envelope on the table, but the content was unknown. They had not seen each other for a week. This is property ? of N?velDrama.Org. By now, Serenity had gotten a grip on herself. ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± Sonny was the first to break the silence. Chapter9to 273 Sonny¡¯s voice urged Zachary to turn around. He quickly put out the cigarette in his hand. He was aware of Serenitying into the room. The only reason Zachary did not turn around was that he was smoking. He did not want her to see him smoking because she had a thing against smokers. It never urred to him that Serenity came along with Sonny. Zachary did not want to expose the little guy to second¨Chand smoke. Drawing near, Zachary removed the ashtray from the coffee table and put it far away. He opened the door, letting fresh air clear the cigarette stench. Serenity watched as he did all that. ¡°I¨CI was bored and took a few puffs. I¡¯ll quit smoking if you don¡¯t like it.¡± Zachary exined as he came forward to take Sonny from Serenity¡¯s arms. Weighing the boy in his hands, Zachary remarked, ¡°Sonny has gotten a little heavier. ¡°Please sit, Seren.¡± Zachary asked his wife to sit down. Serenity took a seat. ¡°I¡¯ll pour you a drink.¡± Zachary put Sonny down and poured his guests a drink. He also took out some snacks for Sonny. He then took a seat next to Sonny. Zachary stared at Serenity for a while before picking up the yellow envelope from the coffee table. He handed the envelope to Serenity and said, ¡°This is for you, Seren.¡± ¡°What¡¯s this? Divorce papers?¡± Zachary responded, ¡°Dream on.¡± Pursing her lips, Serenity took the yellow envelope and replied, ¡°I thought you came around.¡± She opened the yellow envelope and pulled out the papers from inside. It did not take long for her to see what they were all about. Zachary uttered tenderly, ¡°I¡¯m giving you my assets, so you don¡¯t feel the weight of the stress. I ept your proposal to sign an agreement, but my only condition is that Whame¨C910 we don¡¯t divorce.¡± Chapter 911 Chapter 911 Chapter 911 Paperwork for the transfer of Zachary¡¯s personal assets, including York Corporation shares, bank ounts, and all title deeds of residential andmercial properties had been sorted and packed in one envelope for Serenity. ¡°You will own thepany¡¯s equity, but I¡¯ll manage York Corporation for you. The profit will be yours to keep. I¡¯m only working for you. If you have a financial target in mind, I will do my best to help you reach that goal. ¡°We can proceed with the paperwork to transfer everything to your name if you¡¯re okay with it. I won¡¯t keep anything. You can decide how much you want to give me for allowance. ¡°I kept my guard against you, thinking you were out to get my money. Now, I¡¯m I handing over everything I have to you to prove my confidence in you and apologize. through my actions. I promise all the hiding and lies won¡¯t happen again.¡± Without looking at the deeds, Serenity stuffed the document back into the envelope and stared at him in silence. ¡°Say something, Seren. What do you think?¡± Her unresponsiveness drew an unsettling concern in Zachary. There was no telling what was on her mind or what she nned on doing. Serenity slid the envelope across the table to Zachary and said, ¡°I won¡¯t ept this, Zachary,¡± Thrown into a fluster, Zachary grabbed Serenity¡¯s hands out of impulse and desperately asked, ¡°Tell me, what do you want me to do, Seren? I promise I can do whatever it is. ¡°You believe I was far too rich for you, so I¡¯m transferring my assets to you, turning the table between us. I put myself in a lesser position. Isn¡¯t that enough to give your assurance?¡± He was giving her everything he owned. ¡°Zachary, I don¡¯t want your charity. I don¡¯t want to rely on you. Don¡¯t you get it? I don¡¯t want to be an essory, dependent on you for everything.¡± He was a great shoulder to lean on when their rtionship was at its best. What if she got used to having him around too much, and their marriage was doomed? Serenity would be putting herself in a very vulnerable and precarious position. They had only been married for a few months. The way ahead was long. Zachary could say that he would love her forever, but an eternity had no end. Serenity found it hard to believe that his feelings would remain unchanged. Some couples would still fall out of love and separate in theirter years. Serenity was only putting a safeguard in ce. ¡°But I want to be your rock and your lifetime support! ¡°I got you covered for anything and everything.¡±Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had faith in his capabilities. In the past, Zachary always took care of her troubles. She believed he was a superman¨Cher superman. Later, Serenity found out that all the troubles went away because of his social standing. ¡°Seren, take and keep this. I¡¯m readily avable when you decide to go through with the process. The passcode for the bank cards is the same as the one I gave you for household expenses. Just get anything you need. ¡°You can check out the property and see if there¡¯s anything that tickles your fancy. You can also keep a lookout for other properties that are to your liking. Your bumper is still damaged from the time you tailgated another vehicle. I see you haven¡¯t sent the car off for repairs. Why don¡¯t you switch to another car? ¡°I have a lot of cars in the garage. Pick one you like.¡± Zachary slid the envelope back to Serenity, demanding that she epted it. Chapter 912 Chapter 912 Chapter 912 Pre¨Cempting that Serenity would reject his gesture, Zachary put forth a threat before that could happen. ¡°I¡¯ll throw these papers out of the window if you don¡¯t ept the envelope. You¡¯re the head of the household. Why should I care if you don¡¯t give a sh* t about our family asset? All that matters to me is you.¡± Serenity was lost for words. After going a week without seeing each other, Serenity thought he understood where she wasing from and was ready to change his tyrannical attitude when he asked to meet. Nevertheless, Serenity was left to sigh at his threat. A leopard could not possibly change its spots. He was born this way. She should not have counted on herself to be special and be able to change him. Zachary would not change, and she did not want to change. The only option left was to work their problems out one by one. Serenity locked eyes with Zachary for a long time before picking up the envelope. She pulled out a ck card from the envelope and gave it to him. She said, ¡°You¡¯re a man and a CEO. You need a ck card to reflect your status. Keep the bank card, and I¡¯ll hold onto the rest for you for the time being.¡± It was to save him from tossing the document out the window. He would do it. Serenity had no doubt about that. Taking it as a win, Zachary took the ck card and uttered, ¡°I wired a sum into the bank ount that¡¯s for household use. Get anything you want. Don¡¯t scrimp on yourself. Ask your sister whether she wants to buy a ce. You can look at houses. ¡°Rentals don¡¯t give a feeling of home. ¡°We can lend your sister some money if she doesn¡¯t have enough. You can decide on the matter. Liberty and Sonny should have a ce to call home.¡± After a week¨Clong cooling off, Zachary settled upon transferring all his assets to Serenity to give her assurance. Not to mention, he wanted to lend his sister¨Cinw a hand. This was crucial because the people who mattered the most to Serenity were her sister and nephew. ¡°My sister poured her money into the restaurant. A house is not in her ns for now.¡± Serenity had talked to her sister about it. Serenity would lend the money to Liberty if she wanted to get a ce of her own. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Without using Zachary¡¯s money, Serenity had enough savings to provide her sister the financial help. At least, the deposit for the house could be raised. Nevertheless, her sister said no. Liberty wanted to see if she could keep her breakfast ce running. If business was good, Liberty would have money to afford a house in a few years. Liberty did not want to put herself in the position of pouring. money into the business and mortgage in case her business could not make it. There was also the question about Sonny¡¯s education. Sonny would be starting kindergarten in September. Wiltspoon¡¯s early childhood education was more. expensive than in small towns. Serenity paid a month of the rental now that she was living with her sister. Her gesture earned her a nagging. Liberty wanted to return the money, but Serenity had to throw a fit for her sister to stop. Liberty said that she was Sonny¡¯s pir. She needed to be strong on her own without depending on anyone else. While Liberty was happy that Serenity had her back, Liberty could not possibly rely on her sister¡¯s handouts forever. Liberty only epted money from her sister for household expenses because she did not have an ie before she and Hank separated. Now that she found her life purpose, Liberty must walk her own path no matter the challenges ahead. Serenity tenderly remarked, ¡°I have not considered getting a property yet.¡± The figures in her bank ount had yet to reach her target at the moment. She had more pressing matters to attend to than buying a house. Chapter 913 Chapter 913 Chapter 913 ¡°Um¡­ Can I take you to see our properties?¡± Zachary was referring to the houses he bought before they got married. The properties he bought were mostly vis with front and back gardens. Zachary only purchased properties in catchment areas that were highly sought after. He was single back then, but he knew his family would not stop bugging him about. getting married. There would be a time when he would have a family of his own. For his children¡¯s education, he bought houses in a few areas with great schools. His future children would have the freedom to study wherever they wanted to. ¡°Aren¡¯t you busy with your work?¡± ¡°Workes second when I¡¯m with you.¡± Serenity replied disagreeably, ¡°It should at least be sometime during the weekend when you and I don¡¯t have to work.¡± She did not want to pull him out of his busy schedule. Zachary was only testing the waters. Now that he got an answer, he could breathe a sigh of relief. For Serenity to be fine with looking at the houses he bought, this meant she still saw him as her husband. They were still a family in her eyes even though they had separate living arrangements now. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll pick you up from your sister¡¯s on Saturday morning. Can you tell your sister to make me breakfast too?¡± ¡°Got it. It¡¯s not like my sister ever lets you leave hungry?¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity picked Sonny up as she rose to her feet. Serenity remarked, ¡°I¡¯m heading back. Carry on with your work.¡± Zachary quickly got up and asked expectantly, ¡°Can we have lunch together?¡± He looked at the time. Lunch was two hours away as it was only ten o¡¯clock right now. Of course, lunchtime could be flexible. ¡°Nah, I need to take Sonny back to my sister¡¯s. Take care of yourself. Don¡¯t overwork. You might want to stay off the alcohol before you say anything silly.¡± Zachary was speechless. Did someone stab him in the back and snitch to Serenity about his drunk talk? The truth was no one betrayed him. Zachary would say and do things to Serenity in a drunken state back when he was jealous. Serenity was aware that alcohol gave Zachary a loose tongue. ¡°Take this, Seren.¡± Zachary grabbed his entire asset and gave it to Serenity. Serenity looked into his eyes for a while before taking the envelope. With Zachary walking with her, Serenity carried Sonny out of the luxurious presidential suite. ¡°I¡¯ll carry Sonny down. The little guy might be heavy for you.¡± Zachary took Sonny off his wife¡¯s hands. The couple took the lift downstairs. ¡°How¡¯s the injury on your hand looking?¡± ¡°It¡¯s very much healed. I¡¯ve been back to doing my crafts since yesterday. I couldn¡¯t rush my clients¡® orders fromst year. I contacted them. I held onto the orders of clients who were willing to wait and refunded those who couldn¡¯t.¡± As most clients were brought in by Zachary and the others, they were not in a rush to receive their orders. Hence, there was only a handful who opted for the refund. ¡°Don¡¯t tire yourself out,¡± Zachary said, concerned. Truth be told, he could not understand why she would put herself through that. Zachary was well within his means to provide a luxurious life for her. Yet, Serenity. insisted on making her own money. The amount she made in a month was enough. to cover his mother¡¯s handbag. His mother had never worked a day in her life. Nevertheless, his mother came from a wealthy family. All Tania did was manage her inheritance well to receive a sizable profit in return. Chapter 914 Chapter 914 Chapter 914 It then dawned on Zachary the difference in various levels. Serenity would end up like Liberty before the divorce if she did not have a job. She would have to rely on Zachary¡¯s handouts, which he might start to moan about at some time. Unlike his mother, Serenity did not go from one wealthy family to another. Even without working, his mother received profits from her family trust fund and inheritance to be financially independent. Tania once mentioned that her parents were worried she might have a rough time with her inws after marrying Zachary¡¯s father, the heir of the York family. To counter that, her parents named Tania as one of the bigger beneficiaries of the family inheritance. There was apany under Zachary¡¯s mother¡¯s name that grew into a listed corporation through the decades. His mother now managed apany that brought in billions in revenue. Suddenly, it made sense to Zachary why Serenity asked for independence and to have time to blend into his circle. Content provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity smiled. ¡°I can take care of myself. You should too.¡± It had been a long time since Zachary saw her smile. Her smile tempted him to reach out and caress her face. Hiding the ardent longing. behind his eyes, Zachary spoke in a husky voice, ¡°Seren, your smile is the ray of sunshine that melts my cold heart.¡± Since there was no one in the lift, he forcefully extended his arm to pull Serenity and Sonny into his arms. Sonny was trapped in between as his head was pressed against Zachary¡¯s chest. Zachary quickly took hold of her red lips with his. Once their lips met, Zachary sighed. The urge to kiss her had been overwhelming him. s, Sonny ruined the moment before he could deepen the kiss. Squished in the middle, Sonny could barely breathe. He put up a struggle until Zachary let go. Zachary put on an innocent look, pretending like nothing ever happened as he held Sonny and asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Sonny?¡± Sonny stared into his uncle¨Cinw¡¯s straight face. He opened his mouth a few times, but no words escaped his lips. The look on Sonny¡¯s face was a great amusement to Zachary. With a smile, he kissed Sonny¡¯s cheeks and said, ¡°I really like you, Sonny.¡± Zachary would be smiling in his sleep if he and Serenity have a son as cute as Sonny. Of course, it would be great if they had a daughter. ¡°Seren, have you gone for your body checkup recently?¡± Zachary¡¯s mind flew back to their passionate night after New Year. He wondered if Serenity was pregnant. Although the couple did not bring up the lying thing, they knew their marriage was still broken. She was still living with her sister. Zachary believed that God was on his side if Serenity became pregnant. The child could be the turning point for the couple. ¡°I¡¯m healthy. I usually go for a health examination once a year.¡± Serenity could not read between the lines. ¡°When do you usually go for a checkup?¡± ¡°The summer holidays. Business is slow during that time of the year. I go for health. screening when I have nothing to do. It won¡¯te in the way of making money. Zachary was rendered speechless. It was March right now. If she was pregnant, her belly would start showing by summer. He did not want to wait until then. Nevertheless, he could not tell Seren to go for a pregnancy test out loud. While they were talking, the lift had taken the couple to the first floor. The moment the lift opened, Serenity ditched Zachary and carried her nephew out. Zachary took strides to follow behind. The employees of Wiltspoon Hotel watched as their CEO¡¯s wife walked ahead with a child in her arms while their CEO tagged behind like a shadow. Chapter 915 Chapter 915 Chapter 915 Serenity carried Sonny all the way to the car. She unlocked and opened the door to ce Sonny in his child¡¯s seat. She then turned around to face Zachary who was standing behind her. ¡°I got to go.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary looked into her eyes for a while before finding his voice. ¡°Okay.¡± He looked at her front bumper andmented, ¡°You should use another car. Serenity had gotten into the car and started the engine by then. Winding down the window, she said, ¡°This is the first car you gave me.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes darkened. She drove off. Standing there, Zachary watched as her car disappeared. Jim, together with the other bodyguards, stood on duty a distance away. They dared note close. Although Mr. Zachary and his wife did not get into another fight, the couple was. distant from each other. The prior lovingness was no more. Once Serenity¡¯s car was out of sight, Zachary put his hand up and waved. His security detail approached. ¡°To the office,¡± Zachary uttered gruffly. With Jim notifying the chauffeur to bring the car around, Zachary got into his Rolls Royce and returned to the office with his security convoy. Meanwhile, Serenity had arrived at her sister¡¯s breakfast diner. The renovation at Liberty¡¯s restaurant wasing to an end. She had all the things she needed. All that was left was cing the furniture and tidying up before the opening day. Liberty had to pick a good day for her grand opening. The signboard ¡°All You Can Eat¡± may sound cheesy, but it appealed to the general public. The street was packed with fast¨Cfood and breakfast diners. The restaurant owners of the street were curious as to the nature of Liberty¡¯s business when her space underwent renovation. Would Liberty be one of theirpetitors? Some hade forward and asked Liberty, and Liberty had been honest that she was going into the food and beverage line. Later, the restaurant owners would drop by Liberty¡¯s diner to tell her how business was slow as the competition was stiff on the same street. Liberty would smile without giving her two cents. She had surveyed the area when she decided to open her own restaurant. Although eateries upied the most lots on the street, business was great because of heavy footfall. This was also the street that employees of Lewis & Co. would pass through. If a restaurant was not doing well here, it could only mean that the food was not great. Although Lewis & Co. had its own staff cafeteria, thepany gave its employees a choice to eat out or bring their own packed lunch. One of the employee perks was a subsidy for opting out of the cafeteria. Many who had gotten bored with the cafeteria food would eat out and give business to the local restaurants. Not to mention, there was also a nearby high school, an elementary school, and two kindergartens. With some good cooking and a bit of hard work, there was bound to be some money to be made here. Liberty was luckier than the others in the sense that her rental was cheaper. Duncan offered her a good rate. She had to take up household responsibilities and learned to cook from the age of fifteen. Liberty believed she would turn a profit with All You Can Eat. Liberty, who was wiping the tables clean in the restaurant, caught sight of her sister when Serenity parked the car. Chapter 916 Chapter 916 Chapter 916 Liberty stopped wiping the table and walked out with a cloth in her hand. With a smile, she watched as her sister carried her son out of the car. ¡°Mommy.¡± Sonny came running to his mother. With the little man on his way to his mother, Serenity gleefully said to her sister, ¡°I spend a lot of time with him, but he¡¯s still the closest to his morn.¡± ¡°Of course. You should consider one of your own since you and Zachary love children.¡± Liberty poked fun at her sister while keeping an eye on her expression. Seeing that her sister smiled without saying anything, Liberty knew that the couple had not gotten over their differences. ¡°What did Zachary call you over to talk about?¡± Liberty asked out of concern. Picking her son up, Liberty entered the restaurant with her sister. Following the question, Serenity hurried back to the car to retrieve the envelope. It contained all of Zachary¡¯s assets. Back at the restaurant, Serenity asked why the workers were not around, ¡°Is the renovation completed?¡± ¡°Yeah. They just finished. I told them I¡¯ll clean up the ce and see if there were any alterations to be made. I¡¯ll pay them for their work tomorrow if everything¡¯s good.¡± Liberty put down her son to y around in the restaurant. She went and poured her sister a drink. The sisters then took a seat at a table. The table had been wiped and polished clean multiple times before. ¡°Liberty, you¡¯re an eager beaver, aren¡¯t you?¡± Liberty answered with a grin, ¡°Duh. It¡¯s for Sonny¡¯s and my future. I will give my My goal is to open All You Can Eat restaurant chains all over Wiltspoon.¡± ¡°I believe you can do it.¡± all. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity gave the envelope to her sister for a look. ¡°Zachary gave this to me. I didn¡¯t want it, so he compromised by asking me to hold onto it. He hasn¡¯t really understood what I really want.¡± Liberty asked what it was while taking the document out of the envelope. All she saw were title deeds, car keys, and a transfer of York Corporation¡¯s equity. The shares of York Corporation were worth a fortune. ¡°Zachary gave this to you?!¡± Liberty¡¯s eyes widened. There would always be a prenuptial agreement involved before the wealthy took their marriage vows. It was to prevent the brides from taking a chunk out of the groom¡¯s assets. There were also many couples who found sess after marriage. but turned on each other for the estate settlement during the divorce. This was not a situation exclusive to the rich. Hank wanted to give Liberty nothing at the beginning when she asked for a divorce. Apparently, Liberty was getting the deal of her life by receiving thirty thousand dors since she did not work after the marriage. She did not have the right to his money. It was all thanks to Zachary for collecting proof of Hank¡¯s side gig that Liberty was able to threaten Hank to get a cut of his estate and custody rights to her son. She would still receive some money if she took Hank to court, but she would not receive as much as she had had. Zachary was loaded. To provide her sister with assurance, he was willing to give everything he owned to her. It had to be love that drove him to do so. If that was not love, Liberty did not know what was. Zachary was not just giving Serenity his asset, but he was also giving his love. ¡°I think we¡¯re two very different people. It took him a week toe to this decision of leaving me his assets. He said he¡¯ll run thepany, but the profits will belong to me. He believed I would get a sense of security now that I have the upper hand. He doesn¡¯t think there¡¯s a social gap between us. ¡°The only thing he¡¯s asking for is that I don¡¯t leave. I can¡¯t divorce him.¡± Serenity smiled bitterly and added, ¡°He¡¯s only looking at the problem on the surface, Liberty. He hasn¡¯t delved into what is setting us apart. He doesn¡¯t know me well enough.¡± Liberty told her off, ¡°You have only known each other for as long as you have been married. It¡¯s understandable that he doesn¡¯t know you well. Can you say with confidence that you know him inside out too?¡± Chapter 917 Chapter 917 Chapter 917 ¡°Give each other some time.¡± Liberty patted her sister¡¯s hand and put the document back into the envelope. She added, ¡°Don¡¯t put such an important document in my rental house. Although I live in a nice neighborhood, we don¡¯t know much about our neighbors. ¡°Brynfield has a tighter security measure in ce. You can buy a safe to keep in your home with Zachary. It¡¯ll be safer to lock the document in there. This is everything Zachary owns.¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity fell silent before uttering, ¡°I¡¯ll give Nana a callter. I¡¯ll hand the document to Nana to hold onto. Their home is a better ce.¡± ¡°Sounds good.¡± Liberty had no problems with that. She asked, ¡°Are you staying for lunch?¡± ¡°I¡¯m going to the Stones¡® residence to talk to Aunt Audrey. I might have my lunch. there.¡± ¡°What are you going to talk to Aunt Audrey about?¡± Liberty asked with concern, ¡°Do you need help from Aunt Audrey or something?¡± Mrs. Stone was their aunt and a person of position in Wiltspoon. Although the sisters had reunited with Mrs. Stone, they never tried to take advantage of Mrs. Stone¡¯s good name. The sisters even refused Mrs. Stone¡¯s financial help. All it was to the sisters was finding family. There was no change to the sister¡¯s lifestyle, nor did they see a need to have a change. Every time Liberty¡¯s former mother¨Cinw came around to vent, she would call Liberty silly for not taking Mrs. Stone¡¯s money to invest in a bigger business. Even if Liberty did not want to invest or manage a business, she could have taken up a high¨Cpaying position in Stone Group. Mrs. Brown even asked Liberty to get Hank a job from Mrs. Stone. Since Hank often told his parents that he was about to lose his job, Mrs. Brown was desperate to get help from Mrs. Stone through Liberty. Liberty usually turned a deaf ear to her former mother¨Cinw though. ¡°Aunt Audrey mingles with the upper crust. I was thinking if she could introduce me to the circle and see how I feel about it. Can I adapt to high society and blend in? Elisa mentioned to me something about investing in a project. She asked whether I was interested I thought about it and decided to take a gamble. I¡¯m going to put all my money and invest in the project with Elisa.¡± Divorce was not an option. She would not leave Zachary if he refused to let go of her. Since divorce was not on the table, she had to face the challenges head¨Con. No matter the obstacles, she should not turn and run away from them. was a test that life had thrown at her. ¡°I should at least give it a go. Regardless of the oue, I don¡¯t have to have any regrets. I will regret it if I give up without putting my best foot forward.¡± Liberty remarked, ¡°I see you have made up your mind. Go for it! I support you. You can do it, Seren!¡± Serenity smiled and high¨Cfived her sister. ¡°Let¡¯s work hard together!¡± ¡°You should hurry to Aunt Audrey¡¯s ce. She should be up by now. You should make it there on time if you leave now. Otherwise, you¡¯ll have to wait for her toe home.¡± A socialite like Mrs. Stone had a lot nned for the day. ¡°I¡¯ll take Sonny along so that he doesn¡¯t bother you.¡± Liberty answered with a grin, ¡°Alright.¡± She could use the free time. Serenity finished the drink at her sister¡¯s restaurant before leaving with her nephew. She headed for the Stones¡® residence. Once Serenity was gone, Liberty shut the ss door and started jogging around. She insisted on running three times a day to find sess in her weight loss journey. Sometimes when she did not have time to run, Liberty would skip rope in the restaurant. No matter what, she persevered with the workout. Chapter 918 Chapter 918 Chapter 918 Liberty adhered to a strict diet, skipping out on food with high sugar and fat content. She now weighed a hundred and fifty pounds. Her goal was a hundred pounds. With another fifty pounds to go, Liberty only had to persevere to get her figure back. Having shed a lot of pounds, Liberty looked a lot better on the exterior front. By the time Liberty jogged back to her restaurant, her ex¨Chusband was expectedly waiting for her there. Hank¡¯s car was parked right in front of the restaurant. As Liberty had locked the ss door, he could not get into the ce. Leaning against his car, he slipped one hand in his pocket and held a cigarette with the other. He took a puff every now and then. Liberty furrowed her brows. Her ex¨Chusband¡¯s presence was thest thing she wanted to have in her life. It was not like he came to see his son. Liberty found it ironic. Before the divorce happened, Hank was never home. The couple barely had time to talk. He was not willing tomunicate with her as the only thing that came out of her mouth was household affairs. Hank could not be bothered with trivial matters. Hank wanted to talk about stocks and projects. Since Liberty was out of the professional world, she was out of touch and could not give him any advice. Hank refused to give her the time of day, always saying they had nothing inmon to talk about. Now that they were divorced, Liberty did not look for him once, but he kept showing up in front of her. ¡°Where did you go?¡± Seeing that Liberty was back, Hank straightened his back and questioned her with a stern face, ¡°The door¡¯s lock. Is this how you run a business? Don¡¯t waste my money. Do you think just anyone can run a business?¡± ¡°What do you mean your money? I¡¯m spending my money,¡± Liberty responded to Hank¡¯s sullen face with aloofness. ¡°What are you doing here? Shouldn¡¯t you be in the office at this hour? Hank, we¡¯re no longer together Can you stop intruding on my peaceful life? Your wife will use me of stealing her man when she finds out. Tch Liberty would rather be a single mother forever than get back with Hank She had fallen prey to his charms once, but she would not be stupid to fall for the same trick again. ¡°You f*cking cost me my job! My boss fired me and Jessica, and he¡¯s refusing to give us anypensation!¡± Hank intended to get money out of the boss since he was fired. Nevertheless, his boss shut him up with the same evidence that Liberty threatened him with. His boss evenshed out at him. Waltham Electronics had suffered in York Corporation¡¯s hands and lost a lot of businesstely because of Mr. York¡¯s personal grudge against Hank. Waltham Electronics would likely go under if Hank and Jessica kept their jobs. It was not new to Hank that Zachary was behind his taking all the heat at work. He knew his days with Waltham Electronics would not be long. Nevertheless, Hank did not hand in his resignation and was waiting for the boss to fire him. ording to the contract, the boss had topensate him and Jessica for their loss of work. Only, the boss had evidence of his betrayal of thepany. The boss said he was kind enough not to seek damages from Hank. Yet, Hank expected thepany topensate him. There was no way that was happening. ¡°You¡¯re a heartless woman, Liberty. You took more than half of my assets and cost me my job! Hell hath no fury like a woman scorned. I can¡¯t believe I¡¯d experience it firsthand! I don¡¯t regret divorcing you! My only regret is not going ahead with it sooner!¡± He might not have suffered such a big loss if he divorced Liberty before Serenity got married. Hank would never have to face Zachary¡¯s retaliation.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 919 Chapter 919 Chapter 919 Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Furious, Liberty let out a smirk. ¡°Did I cost you your job? Do you think your greed will go unnoticed? You¡¯re to be med for your job loss. Don¡¯t take your anger out on anyone else.¡± She curtly added, ¡°I have my regrets too. I regret not seeing through you and not divorcing you sooner! Hank, if there¡¯s one thing I don¡¯t regret in life, it¡¯s our divorce!¡± Hank shot her a re and uttered angrily, ¡°Even so! I will lose my job anyway because you have Zachary to help you! Liberty, we were husband and wife for many years. That should count for something, but you are so wicked to pull that on me!¡± During the divorce, he asked her not to get back at him with the evidence. She gave him her word and promised not to act in retribution. Hank did not count on Serenity and her husband to y a part in this. This was a deliberate act. ¡°I bet you knew Zachary is Mr. York right from the start. You knew he would give me a hard time, get me fired, and destroy my future.¡± ¡°How was I supposed to know who Zachary is?¡± Liberty refuted, ¡°I¡¯m only a stay¨Cat- home mother and housewife. How would I have the means to find out about Zachary¡¯s identity? ¡°Besides, what did I pull on you? The divorce is between us. I gave you my word, but i have no control over Seren and Zachary¡¯s thoughts and actions. It¡¯s the same as when you couldn¡¯t promise your mother and sister would give me trouble.¡± Something struck Hank at the mention of Chelsea. ¡°So Zachary¡¯s the reason my sister and her husband lost their job before the holidays? ¡°It must be Zachary! He was sticking up for you!¡± Liberty smirked. ¡°Zachary is my brother¨Cinw. What¡¯s wrong with my brother¨Cinw sticking up for me? You can go talk to Zachary if you don¡¯t like it.¡± Hank was speechless¨Cas if he had the guts to do so. Hank lost all bravado at the thought of showing his face at York Corporation. He came to Liberty today because he heard Serenity was steamed up after learning about Zachary¡¯s identity. The couple had not made up yet. Before Serenity admitted to her status as Mrs. York, Hank still had a chance to give Liberty a piece of his mind. Hank would hold his tongue if Serenity was here though. Zachary was the heir of the York family. His right¨Chand man was Josh of the mysterious Bucham family. These men were from the most powerful families in Wiltspoon. Serenity hated Hank¡¯s guts. All it took was for Serenity to say one bad thing about Hank to Zachary, and Hank would never be able to find work in Wiltspoon again. He needed money for the renovation of his marital home with Jessica. The Yateses were furious when they found out he and Jessica tied the knot in secret. However, there was no turning back on time. The 777,777 dors the Yateses demanded were rounded down significantly to 700,000 dors. It was mainly because Jessica spent most of Hank¡¯s money on the renovation. Now that he was footing the bill, he realized it was not easy to n for the finances. Every aspect of the home reconstruction required money. Refusing to bleed any more cash, Jessica made the final call on the amount to give to the Yateses. Although the money for the Yateses was reduced, it was still a huge sum. Besides, they were also nning a wedding. In short, they needed money. However, the couple was out of work. ¡°Liberty, I should¡¯ve watched my tone.¡± Controlling his temper, Hank suddenly apologized to Liberty. ¡°Is your restaurant remodeled? Can I get a tour of the ce?¡± Liberty warily asked, ¡°We can talk here. What¡¯s the big idea going into my restaurant? We¡¯re not married or friends. It¡¯s better we don¡¯t be alone, or your wife wille using me of seducing her man.¡± Hank was speechless. Chapter 920 Chapter 920 Chapter 920 Hank wanted to say that he had lost interest in Liberty a long time ago Liberty was fat and her weight took away all redeeming assets However, now that Liberty shed a lot of pounds she looked better than before Hank could no longer say that in full confidence Liberty was beautiful before the birth of their son She was no lesser than Jessica in every single way ¡°Jessica loves to overthink. We were once a married couple after all. Jessica will take it the wrong way so long as we remain in contact Don¡¯t take it to heart, Liberty¡± If Liberty still loved him. It was a huge ego boost for Hank with two women fighting over him. It was all in his head though. Liberty had stopped loving him a long time ago. Hank had mixed feelings about it. He was the one who betrayed Liberty, but it did not sit well with Hank that Liberty let go of her feelings for him. Hank hoped his life with Jessica would only get better after the divorce while Liberty could live her days miserably. Nevertheless, reality showed that Liberty was doing much better than he was. ¡°Liberty, I don¡¯t have a job now. It¡¯s not easy to find another job since Zachary¡¯s out to get me. Seeing that we have been married for so many years and have a son together, can¡¯t you help me? ¡°How much did you spend on this restaurant? I guess it¡¯s no more than a hundred thousand dors. I give you over a million dors for the divorce settlement. You can lend me the rest of the money. ¡°Jessica and I are picking a date for our wedding. With the weddinging up, we have to spend money on food, d¨¦cor, and entertainment. I¡¯m strapped for cash right now ¡°Lend me the money. I¡¯ll return the money once I find a new job. We have Sonny between us, so there¡¯s no concern that I won¡¯t pay you back the money.¡± Turning on her heel, Liberty unlocked the restaurant door and carried a bucket of water out. She ced the bucket in front of Hank and said, ¡°Bend over and look into the water¡± ¡°What am I looking at?¡± It did not register in Hank¡¯s head. ¡°Look at how shameless you are! Why should I lend my money to you? Don¡¯t have a wedding if you don¡¯t have money for it. Why does it have to do with me? Hank, do you think I¡¯m still the same Liberty as before? ¡°You killed the woman who loved you, would do anything for you, and put up with your everything. ¡°Get lost! Go away and nevere back!¡± Liberty said as she picked the bucket up to ssh at Hank. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Swiftly retreating, Hank yelled, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m still Sonny¡¯s father. Sonny will find out the things you¡¯ve done to me when he grows up. He will hate and me you for being tough on his father. ¡°If you don¡¯t want to lend me the money, I can take over your restaurant. I guarantee I can do a better job than you.¡± Liberty advanced forward to ssh the bucket of water on Hank. Hank was able to evade the attack. Lifting her arms, Liberty threw the bucket at Hank. This time, Hank¡¯s quick reflexes could not save him from getting hit. After hurling the bucket, Liberty picked up the broom by the door and whacked Hank with it. Hank ducked and dodged a few times before slipping into the car and driving away. While fleeing, he shouted, ¡°B*tch! You¡¯re a b*tch, Liberty! No man will ever want you now that I¡¯ve left you!¡± Chapter 921 Chapter 921 Chapter 921 Hank fled away in his car. On his way home, he could not stop cussing Liberty out. Jessica was the sweetest. and kindest little thing. Hank did not regret divorcing Liberty! Back at his rented ce, Hank saw a familiar car downstairs. Hank¡¯s head was about to explode. It was his sister. Here came his sister again. Hank ran his fingers along his hair in annoyance. He had better go home. He and Jessica were out of work. It was clear that Zachary was out to get him. Did Zachary have something to do with his sister and brother¨Cinw losing their jobs too? In that case, Hank had dragged his sister down with him. Once outside the door, Hank could hear the arguments inside. Since thepany let Jessica and Hank go together, the couple left the office together. However, Hank told Jessica to get out and hail a cab mid¨Cjourney as he needed to blow some steam off. Showing understanding, Jessica took a cab home. She was not in a good mood either. Hank always looked out for her when she was Hank¡¯s secretary. She also enjoyed a good ie, so to suddenly lose her job, Jessica had a lot of fury in her. She came back to her rented home to find her sister¨Cinw and Lucas there. Jessica faintly said hello before turning to her bedroom. Jessica walked into her bedroom turned upside down. Her cosmetic and skincare products were scattered all over the dressing table and floor. Her lipsticks were broken in halves, and her dressing table was covered in various skincare creams. The walls, floor, and duvet cover had doodles of red. The red scribbles made her see red. ¡°Mom.¡± Jessica shouted out loud. Mrs. Brown came in and asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Why do you have to scream so loud? I¡¯m not deaf. I can hear.¡± ¡°Mom, look at my room. Did Lucas do this? Lucas is a naughty boy. I told you many times not to let him into Hank¡¯s and my room. Look at what he did to my cosmetic and skincare products. He messed the room up.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Chelsea entered the room and inspected her son¡¯s handy work. She remarked without a care, ¡°You can clean up. You¡¯re an adult and an aunt. How can you fuss about it with a four¨Cyear¨Cold child? ¡°Lucas is just a little boy. He doesn¡¯t know any better. He yed with your things, thinking they were toys. That¡¯s how he ys when hees here. Liberty never said anything.¡± Liberty would lock the bedroom door to stop Lucas from entering. Besides, Sonny had a lot of toys. Lucas would fight with Sonny over toys instead of wreaking havoc in Liberty¡¯s room. Liberty would clean up after Lucas and never threw a fit over it. Liberty had always been tolerant. Sonny¡¯s custody went to Liberty after the divorce. Plus, Jessica had not given birth to a child. Since there were no kids in the family, there were also no toys. Four years old was an active and cheeky age. Toddlers at this age could not sit still for a minute. Without any toys around, Lucas could only look for his own. entertainment. Hank did not have the tendency of locking doors. Lucas simply turned the doorknobs and let himself in. Chelsea came over to vent to her mother about finding a job. Now that she and her husband were jobless at home, they were spending more money than ever. Plus, the couple had been having fights¨C her criticizing her husband for taking so long to find a job and her husband using her of being useless. Chapter 922 Chapter 922 Chapter 922 George wanted to open his own construction material business. It cost around a hundred thousand dors to rent a space and give it a facelift. Chelsea was reluctant to use her savings for her husband¡¯s business setup now that the couple was no longer with an ie. She would lose her savings if the business became a bust. Nevertheless, Chelsea wanted her husband to try it out. She would be the boss¡¯s wife if the business was up and running. ustomed to getting financial help from her family, Chelsea naturally came to her parents and brother for help. ¡°I¡¯m not Liberty!¡± Jessica broke down and yelled, ¡°Go to Liberty if you like her that much. See if she even cares!¡± She was most bitter when the Brownspared her with Liberty. Before, the Browns often disgruntledly pointed out this and that about Liberty to Jessica. Since the divorce and Jessica joining the family, the Browns were now fawning over Liberty. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Chelsea, your son messed up my room, so you have to clean it up. You need to rece all the cosmetic and skincare products Lucas broke.¡± Furious, Chelsea retorted, ¡°Well, I didn¡¯t do it, so why should I be the one to clean up? Sure, Lucas is at fault. You can ask the boy to tidy up his mess. He should take responsibility for his actions. Go look for Lucas. ¡°Didn¡¯t my brother buy your cosmetic and skincare products? It¡¯s not your money. You have no right to demand me to rece them. Bring out the proof that you paid for them. Then I¡¯ll consider paying you back.¡± Jessica picked up the pillow in rage and threw it at Chelsea. ¡°Hank is my husband now! My husband¡¯s gifts to me are mine to keep. You should rece them at full value, or you can forget ever stepping into this house so long as I am here. ¡°Better yet, take your mother home with you, so she can look after your child. She never helped me anyway. Don¡¯te looking for me when she¡¯s immobilized, sick, and needs tending to! Don¡¯t expect me to be nice when none of you have been nice to me! ¡°I¡¯m putting it out there now. I¡¯m not as kind and good¨Cnatured as Liberty!¡± ¡°This is my brother¡¯s home. My parents live here. You have no right to kick me out or refuse me entry! Let me tell you. You don¡¯t call the shots in this family! You shameless b*tch! You¡¯re a wh*re, mistress, and homewrecker! All you¡¯re good for is seducing men. Because of you, my brother now has a broken family.¡± Jessica was a mistress¨Cturn¨Cwife. Still, she could not stand it when people called her a wh*re and homewrecker. With the insults getting on herst nerve, Jessica pounced at Chelsea and got into a catfight. As Mrs. Brown was on her daughter¡¯s side, she acted like she was pulling them apart, but she was, in fact, aiding her daughter in the fight. Jessica was a ball of fire. She alone took on Chelsea and her mother, and although Jessica did not gain an upper hand, she was not on the losing end either. Carrying Lucas in his arms, Mr. Brown yelled at the bedroom door without getting involved in the fight. Hank opened the door and found that the screaming match had turned into a full- blown fight. Tossing his car keys aside, he rushed in there to stop the catfight. ¡°What¡¯s going on here?¡± ck in the face, Hank questioned in a loud voice. ¡°Look, Hank.¡± With her husband having her back, Jessica put on those sad puppy dog eyes and showed Hank the damage. She uttered in distress, ¡°Lucas destroyed my makeup and skincare products. He scribbled all over our room. ¡°I told your sister to tidy up the ce, but she refused. She even called me a wh*re, a mistress, and a homewrecker. Apparently, the only thing I did was seduce you, but you came on me first¡­ You said you¡¯ll be my shield forever, and you won¡¯t let anyone bully me. Well, your sister is picking on me.¡± Chapter 923 Chapter 923 Chapter 923 ¡°I married you without having a wedding reception. Your sister¡¯s terrorizing me. I guess she can¡¯t be bothered to y the nice sister¨Cinw.¡± Jessica heard that the Browns acted as though they adored Liberty and her sister before Hank and Liberty got married. After Liberty gave birth, the Browns showed their true colors, probably thinking Liberty would not leave since there was a child in the picture. Jessica had to admit that the Browns were good actors. The Browns did not care to put on a show now that Jessica married Hank. Jessica had real feelings for Hank. Otherwise, she would have thought twice before marrying into the family. As for the crazy inws, she had the confidence to sort them out. Her inws did not scare her. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. There was nothing to fear so long as she clung tight to Hank¡¯s heart and his wallet. Jessica whined amid tears. Hank¡¯s heart was broken as he stared at her tearful face. He scanned the room with anger building inside him. Wrapping his arm around Jessica¡¯s shoulder, Hank said, ¡± Didn¡¯t you keep an eye on Lucas, Chelsea? Look at what Lucas did! You have the audacity to criticize Jessica. You will be mad too if you¡¯re in her shoes.¡± Chelsea unapologetically replied, ¡°Lucas is just a child. He doesn¡¯t know better.¡± ¡°He doesn¡¯t know better, but you do. Why didn¡¯t you stop him when he wreaked havoc in my room? Was it intentional?¡± ¡°Hank, I¡¯m your sister. Is this how you treat your sister? I don¡¯t know when Lucas went into your bedroom. I was cooking with Mom, so I didn¡¯t hear anything. I thought Lucas was watching cartoons. How was I supposed to know he was tearing down. your room? ¡°It¡¯s for your fault for not locking your bedroom door. Don¡¯t try to pin the me on Lucas your own mistake. I would¡¯ve seen Lucas going into your room if I wasn¡¯t helping Mom with the cooking. ¡°What¡¯s the point of you getting a wife? She does nothing at home. Mom and Dad are on cleaning, grocery, and cooking duty. They handle all the chores. You¡¯re not even considerate of Mom and Dad. All you do is take your wife¡¯s side. ¡°Hank, you weren¡¯t like this before.¡± Chelsea believed her brother had only stood behind his wife since he remarried. ¡°Jessica and I need to work while Mom and Dad are retired at home. It¡¯s not like they have to look after a child. What¡¯s wrong with helping with the house chores, doing the groceries, and cooking? Jessica and I pay for the food. We don¡¯t spend a dime of Mom and Dad¡¯s money. Mom and Dad used their own money when they ran your household and looked after your children. Have you and my brother¨Cinw ever paid for anything?¡± Chelsea was stumped for words. ¡°Don¡¯t be mad, Jessica. I¡¯ll rece all the makeup Lucas broke. We should remember to lock the bedroom door before we go out. We¡¯re all a family. Let¡¯s just move on and leave the matter behind us.¡± Hank tenderly wiped away Jessica¡¯s tears. Jessica did not mention her mother¨Cinw¡¯s name when moaning to Hank. Not liking where things were heading, Mrs. Brown kept her mouth shut. It upset Mrs. Brown that her son gave her daughter¨C inw all the attention in the world. ¡°Hank, I don¡¯t have it in for your sister. It¡¯s just Lucas can be very naughty. I only reproached your sister because I was angry, but your sister was being unreasonable and tried to hit me¡­ You¡¯re a family here, not me. I¡¯m only an outsider. They put me down together.¡± ¡°My sister can be like that. Just ignore her from now on. You¡¯re the head of our family. I¡¯ll go after whoever steps on your toes Chapter 924 Chapter 924 Chapter 924 Hank gave his sister the stink eye. ¡°Clean up my room, Chelsea. You should keep an eye on Lucas next time Don¡¯t turn. the ce upside down every time youe. Lucas always picked on Sonny and stole his toys back then. He even lied and beat Sonny up so bad he was in the hospital I know he¡¯s young, but you should start disciplining him now. You¡¯ll regret not doing anything about his behavior when he grows up.¡± Despite wanting to say her piece, Chelsea was reminded of why she was here. Hence, she reluctantly uttered, ¡°Got it I¡¯ll tidy up your bedroom That¡¯s how Lucas is. How am I supposed to do anything about it?¡± After soothing his wife, Hank asked his sister, ¡°What brings you here, Chelsea?¡± ¡°Your brother¨Cinw and I are out of work. We haven¡¯t been lucky with our job prospects, and our age is not helping either The employees are looking for people not older than thirty¨Cfive years old Your brother¨Cinw and I are in our forties. ¡°So now your brother¨Cinw is thinking of setting up his own business in construction supplies A lot of people are buying houses now, and they will need to do some remodeling. I think it¡¯s the business to be right now, but we don¡¯t have much money. We were thinking about borrowing some money from you ¡°You have a high¨Cpaying job and savings of over a million dors. I think three hundred thousand dors should be enough for your brother¨Cinw to try his hand at business. We¡¯ll return the money to you in interest when his business turns out to be a sess.¡± A hundred thousand dors was enough to set up the business Chelsea asked for more to have some leeway in the budget. Since her brother had money, Chelsea wanted to borrow as much as she could Having found out the reason for her sister¨Cinw showing up here, Jessica pulled a long face. Jessica remained without a word to see what Hank had to say about this. Hank replied, ¡°It¡¯s nice that my brother¨Cinw wants to try and make it out on his own, but does it cost that much to set up a business? You and my brother¨Cinw have been working for more than a decade Mom and Dad had been paying for your household expenses Your decade¨Clong savings should be more than three hundred thousand dors by now¡± Chelsea choked. It did not take long before she found her voice again. ¡°Your brother- inw and I have been without an ie for months. We¡¯ve been eating away our savings, so there isn¡¯t much left. Besides, I have three children to raise. I can¡¯t spend the savings all at once. ¡°We didn¡¯t earn a lot anyway. How much can we save in a year? You¡¯re in a much better financial situation than we are. ¡°I¡¯m not exaggerating about our finances, Hank. It¡¯s the truth. Your annual ie is more than your brother¨Cinw¡¯s and my decade¨Clong srybined.¡± Hank did not believe a word she said. Chelsea might have started off with low wages, but there had been a dramatic increase in their sries in recent years. The couple could at least save a hundred thousand dors in a year. It was not like his sister could not afford to set up shop. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You should talk to Jessica, Chelsea. I don¡¯t have a problem if Jessica wants to lend you the money. She wears the pants in the house. I gave her my bank ount details. She manages the finance for our house renovation. It makes things easier. ¡°Also, I should let you all know that Jessica and I lost our jobs today. Since Serenity is the wife of the York family¡¯s heir, Mr. York is out to get us. The evidence Liberty used against me was handed to my boss. The boss fired us both without offering anypensation.¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were speechless. Chelsea stared at Jessica. Was her brother foolish? Why was Jessica given full financial control? Now that Jessica was managing the money, it was a no¨Cbrainer that she would not lend Chelsea any money. Chapter 925 Chapter 925 Chapter 925 As expected, Jessica said, ¡°Chelsea, Hank and I have a weddinging up. Our house is under renovation too. Everything costs money. We both lost our jobs, so we don¡¯t have any spare cash lying around to lend you.¡± Jessica gathered from Hank¡¯s statement that her money¨Chungry sister¨Cinw had fat savings. Chelsea was used to getting financial help from her family. To Chelsea, she did not see the point of spending her own money when she could use her family¡¯s. So long as Jessica was around, Chelsea could forget getting a dime out of Hank. Pursing her lips, Chelsea was without a word. Meanwhile, at the Stones¡® residence, Serenity held Sonny¡¯s hand as they walked into a grand living room. ¡°You¡¯re here, Sonny. Come,e to your grandaunt.¡± All smiles, Mrs. Stone got up to wee Sonny. After finding out that Mrs. Stone was his grandaunt and meeting a few times, Sonny was happy to let Mrs. Stone hold him now. ¡°Aunt Audrey.¡± Serenity handed two bags of fruits she bought to Mrs. Stone. She said, ¡°These are your favorite fruits, Aunt Audrey.¡± ¡°Oh, my favorites, but I can get the fruits myself. I don¡¯t want you to spend money on me. I¡¯m happy enough that you and your sister can visit. You don¡¯t have to get me anything.¡± Serenity and her sister often brought along expensive gifts when they first came. After a good telling¨C off from Mrs. Stone, the sisters switched to buying a couple of hundred dors worth of fruits. At least, Mrs. Stone would not feel bad about them. splurging. Mrs. Stone came from a poor family. Although she had enjoyed the most expensive cuisines after marrying a rich husband, she still enjoyed seasonal fruits. For a person of her status, no one would say anything if she bought a meal at a food truck. Serenity and Sonny took a seat on the sofa. No sooner had Serenity put the bags of fruits on the coffee table than the maid came to carry the fruits away for a wash. Mrs. Stone did not want to waste the fruits bought by the sisters. She would have the fruits washed and enjoyed by all. Her sons and daughter would not say anything bad about the fruits even though they did not like to eat them. It was a token of the sisters¡® gesture at the end of the day. ¡°Is Elisa out?¡± Serenity casually remarked, Seeing that Elisa was not around. ¡°God knows where the girl went. She might have asked her girlfriends out shopping. She¡¯s prodigal. All she does is buy, buy, buy. She never really uses the things she bought. She would put the stuff in a pile before tossing them out. Don¡¯t you think. she¡¯s reckless with money?¡± Mrs. Stone moaned and groaned about her daughter¡¯s extravagant spending.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Thank goodness she had two sons who earned a good living and doted on their sister. They were d to provide their sister with a hefty allowance. ¡°Isn¡¯t Elisa going to try her hand at investment? Maybe she went to survey the project.¡± Elisa had never worked in an office. However, she must have an eye for investment since she was born into a family with business acumen. Serenity wanted to explore new grounds with Elisa and see if she could make it out there. ¡°Who knows? Is your hand injury any better now, Seren?¡± Chapter 926 Chapter 926 Chapter 926 While carrying Sonny with one hand, Mrs. Stone held Serenity¡¯s hand and nced at it. Distressed and helpless, she said, ¡°Since Zachary confessed his identity, you¡¯ve always stopped me from standing up for you. You didn¡¯te to me and pour out your feelings either. I¡¯m so worried that my hair has turned gray. You and your sister are always this stubborn. ¡°I remember that your mom has a good temper and isn¡¯t stubborn at all. I wonder whom you take after with your stubbornness. Serenityughed and asked, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say my sister and I take after you in temper?¡± Mrs. Stone choked. She recalled that she admired Serenity and her sister not just because of their kinship, but also because of the way the two of them conducted. themselves. Indeed, Serenity took after Mrs. Stone in stubbornness. ¡°Now that you came over today, what help do you need from me?¡± Ever since Zachary confessed his identity, all Elisa felt was anger. Even so, she did. not fall out with Serenity. She took pity on Serenity who was wronged and deceived. by Zachary. She imed that she wanted to deal with Zachary on Serenity¡¯s behalf. It was finally a load off the Stones¡® minds. Since her daughter could face it openly, Mrs. Stone was not too worried. Whenever her niece needed her, she would stand up for her with her identity as next of kin. ¡°Aunt Audrey, I need to ask you for a favor.¡± ¡°Say it. If it¡¯s within my capabilities, I¡¯ll definitely help you. Even if I can¡¯t, you have two other cousins to help solve your problem.¡± Serenity said with a grin, ¡°I don¡¯t need them. Your help is enough. You always attend. social gatherings, don¡¯t you? I shamelessly hope that you¡¯ll bring me along to all the social gatherings you attend in the future.¡± Mrs. Stone grasped her point and said, ¡°No problem. I usually ask Elisa to apany me to social gatherings, but she doesn¡¯t want to. She thinks those people are hypocritical, and she¡¯s toozy to deal with them. ¡°But everyone is two¨Cfaced in all circles¨Cthis is reality. For those who can benefit you, you should go all out to butter them up. As for those who aren¡¯t beneficial and offendable, you¡¯d better not offend them. As for those who are not of help and have a lower status, you can put on airs and don¡¯t have to worry about offending them. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You just have to understand that everyone prioritizes benefits. Don¡¯t simply trust other people. It¡¯s important to guard against others, but don¡¯t do harm to others either. If someone wants to harm you, you don¡¯t need to tolerate them. Just attack them bravely and let them know that you¡¯re not to be taken lightly.¡± Serenity nodded again and again. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you ask Zachary to bring you along?¡± Mrs. Stone asked out of curiosity. Given that Serenity came to look for her today, Mrs. Stone knew that Serenity was trying to mingle with Zachary¡¯s social circle to strive for Zachary and her future. After Serenity fell quiet for a moment, she said, ¡°Zachary is domineering. I won¡¯t be able to see through other people if I attend social gatherings with him.¡± Zachary would be protective of her, so no one would dare to provoke her in front of him. In that case, she would not be able to see through those people and decide whether they were worth keeping as friends. Since she wanted to be with Zachary forever, she would surely have to attend social gatherings alone at times in the future. If she was unable to fathom those people, she would easily get tricked and framed on those asions. Serenity wanted to attempt and see if she was able to adapt to the circle filled with. hypocritical and scheming people. After some thought, Mrs. Stone said, ¡°That¡¯s true. Although the upper sses might seem well¨C educated, they¡¯re all hypocrites. They do things that are different from what they say. Some people will trap you openly. ¡°They¡¯re also xenophobic and won¡¯t easily let other people join their circles. Many richdies want to associate with thosedies from wealthy families, but they¡¯re looked down upon. ¡°The Yorks¡® status is apparent. You¡¯re the York family¡¯s eldest daughter¨Cinw. On the surface, they won¡¯t do anything to you, but they might secretly plot against you. Since you¡¯ve decided to be with Zachary forever, these are the things you need to face and adapt to on your own. You also need to learn to counterattack so you¡¯ll remain invincible even without Zachary by your side. ¡°That way, you can strengthen your high social standing in Wiltspoon. This will be helpful to you when you take charge of the Yorks¡® backhouse and be a qualified wife of the head of the family.¡° Chapter 927 Chapter 927 Chapter 927 Deep down, Serenity wondered who else she could spend the rest of her life with apart from Zachary, That domineering man would panic if she mentioned that she wanted to break up. Since she could not split with him; she could only try to blend in with his circle. ¡°Lately, I¡¯ve received quite a number of invitations. I haven¡¯t taken a look at them. They shouldn¡¯t be of importance. The butler did not deliberately remind me.¡± Mrs. Stone added, ¡°Since you want to tag along to umte your experience, I¡¯l let you join every social gathering with me.¡± As she was speaking, she ordered someone to hand her the invitation cards. After looking at all the invitations, she passed them to Serenity. ¡°Seren, please sort these cards based on the dates, in ascending order. I¡¯ll then describe to you the organizers of each social gathering, what businesses they are doing, how they became wealthy, their family members, and their personalities. ¡°When you get along with other people, it¡¯s crucial to have a good grasp of their personalities. In fact, getting along with people is equivalent to going to a battlefield. You can only gain victory by knowing your enemies well.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity looked at every invitation card and arranged them based on their dates from earliest totest. ¡°Mom, is Serenity here?¡± At that moment, Elisa¡¯s voice rang out from outside the house. Soon, she was seen swinging the car key. As soon as she saw Sonny, she went toward him with a grin. She took him from her mother¡¯s arms and lifted him high, which had himughing non¨Cstop. ¡°El¨ªsa, you need to hold Sonny tightly. Make sure you don¡¯t drop him.¡± Mrs. Stone nervously reminded her daughter, worrying that thetter would drop him if she did not hold him tight enough. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mom. I won¡¯t drop Sonny even if I¡¯m going to fall.¡± After ying with Sonny for a while, Elisa put him down and asked, ¡°Sonny, do you like me?¡± ¡°Yes, I like you very much. You¡¯re pretty. I like you.¡± Elisa pinched his face softly and said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re so sweet, Sonny. You¡¯re still young, yet you already know how to make a woman happy. When you grow up, you¡¯ll surely be adykiller.¡± She then touched her face and said confidently, ¡°Having said that, Sonny is a child. He¡¯s most sincere, and he¡¯s telling the truth. I¡¯m just pretty and lovely.¡± Serenity grinned and said, ¡°Yes. Sonny is telling the truth.¡± Mrs. Stone said, ¡°How boastful of you.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mom, Seren, what are the two of you looking at? I saw both of you looking engrossed when I entered.¡± Elisa turned her eyes to the pile of invitation cards. She casually took one and flipped through it. After taking a look at it, she ced it back on the coffee table and said, ¡°I dislike attending this kind of social gathering the most.¡± ¡°Seren, is my mom nning to bring you along? Let me tell you that this type of asion isn¡¯t fun. We might as well ask Jasmine out and have Italian food together.¡± Mrs. Stoneined about her daughter, ¡°Do you think everyone¡¯s like you? You said you wanted to learn how to start a business and invest. If you don¡¯t socialize with other people, how are you going to grow a business? I saw the Dowlings are having a social gathering tomorrow night. Both of youe along with me and make an appearance. Also, learn how to socialize with others.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m not going. What¡¯s more, the Dowlings¡® status is much lower than ours. Since when do you show respect for families who aren¡¯t that wealthy?¡± ¡°Elisa, I was the one who asked Aunt Audrey to bring me along. I guess I¡¯ll always have to attend such social gatherings in the future. I¡¯ll take it as a learning experience.¡± Elisa asked, ¡°Oh. So you¡¯ve made peace with Zachary, huh? Acknowledge me as the older cousin¨Cin¨C law. I¡¯ll put in the good word the moment he sees me as family.¡± ¡°You¡¯re a few years younger than Zachary, yet you shamelessly want him to acknowledge you as the older cousin¨Cinw,¡± Mrs. Stone criticized her daughter. Elisa said self¨Crighteously, ¡°I¡¯m Seren¡¯s cousin, whereas Zachary is Seren¡¯s husband, so technically I¡¯m higher in seniority. Seniority isn¡¯t ranked by age¨Csome people are already someone¡¯s uncle once they¡¯re born.¡± Chapter 928 Chapter 928 Chapter 928 Mrs. Stone was at a loss for words. ¡°Seren, since you¡¯ve made up your mind, I¡¯ll sacrifice myself to apany you and Mom to y pretend with others. On that kind of asion, everyone puts on an act.¡± Mrs. Stone was infuriated by her daughter. Serenityughed and said, ¡°In my opinion, we need to learn to tolerate a lot of things, considering that you¡¯ve decided to learn to grow a business.¡± ¡°How great it would be if Elisa is half as understanding as you are.¡± Mrs. Stone could not do anything to her daughter. Of course, her daughter had enough capital, so she could act however she wanted without having to make a false show ofpliance. ¡°Elisa is great. I like how straightforward Elisa is.¡± Elisa lifted her chincently and said to her mother, ¡°Mom, look, you think Serenity is better than me, but she thinks that I¡¯m great.¡± ¡°Oh you, bing so arrogant with just onepliment.¡± The three of them were chatting merrily. With Sonny¡¯s baby talk in between, the house was filled with laughter. After a while, a maid walked over and said courteously, ¡°Ma¡¯am, dinner is ready.¡± Mrs. Stone said to Serenity, ¡°Mm. Seren, we¡¯ll have dinner first. After that, you can go upstairs and try Elisa¡¯s gowns to see which style suits you. Then, I¡¯ll buy you a few sets of gowns. You can have your hair styled in the afternoon. ¡°Since you¡¯ve chosen to be with Zachary, you shouldn¡¯t rely on him and lose your sense of self. You need to make a change. ¡°Besides, what you¡¯re trying to learn will be useful to your life. I¡¯ll slowly teach you etiquette. You¡¯re clever, and I believe you¡¯ll grasp it in no time.¡± Serenity adhered to Mrs. Stone¡¯s n and had noment on it. She might not be able to embark on the same path as her aunt did, but she could work hard to be more outstanding. That way, she would not hold Zachary back, at least. ¡°Let¡¯s have dinner, Sonny.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Stone carried Sonny whom she was very fond of. He resembled her sister when she was young. If she put on a skirt for Sonny, he would bear a closer resemnce to her sister. ¡°Mom, is Alice at home?¡± ¡°She said she hasn¡¯t been feeling welltely, so she went to the hospital for a check- up. Before Seren came, Alice called to inform me that she would have dinner with. her family after the check¨Cup. Then, she¡¯lle back at night.¡± Mrs. Stone would not restrict the number of times her daughter¨Cinw visited her mother. She too had a daughter. After her daughter got married, Mrs. Stone would also hope that her daughter could visit her often. Some wealthy women would impose many restrictions on their daughters¨Cinw. ¡°Why isn¡¯t Alice feeling well?¡± Elisa asked concernedly as she had a good rtionship with her eldest sister¨Cinw. Serenity was very concerned about Alice¡¯s condition too. ¡°She hasn¡¯t given me a call yet. She probably hasn¡¯t gotten the report.¡± Mrs. Stone said, ¡°That shouldn¡¯t be a big issue. We go for a body check¨Cup every half a year.¡± At the mention of the body check¨Cup, Serenity recalled what Zachary said to her. She wondered if she should go to the hospital for a check¨Cup as well. They sat at the dining table. As Sonny could eat on his own, he did not need the adults to feed him. This reduced the hassle for them. Just as Mrs. Stone lifted her spoon, a maid came in and said politely, ¡°Ma¡¯am, Mr. Zachary is here.¡± Chapter 929 Chapter 929 Chapter 929 Mrs. Stone cast a nce at her niece and said, ¡°From the day we know each other until now, this is Zachary¡¯s first time paying a visit.¡± Serenity brought some dishes to Sonny and said indifferently, ¡°He¡¯s guilty.¡± ¡°He¡¯s indeed guilty. He definitely came over for your sake. I feel angry that he lied to you too, but it¡¯s undeniable that he has fallen in love with you. ¡°You¡¯ve known him for several months, but I¡¯ve truly known him for a decade, so I have a better understanding of him than you do.¡± The Yorks were very protective of their children. Before the children grew up and stepped into the business world, the public had no idea who they were. The children. kept a low profile and were no different from any ordinary child. That was why Mrs. Stone said that she had truly known Zachary for a decade. At that time, Zachary was already under training at York Corporation. He officially showed his face when his grandparents took him to a grand business reception. Since he took over York Corporation, he had an annoying habit of bringing along a group of sturdy bodyguards wherever he went in order to keep way numerous young women who admired him. That was the deepest impression that everyone had on Zachary. Mrs. Stone watched Zachary turn from 20 to 30 years old. Indeed, he had never been embroiled in any scandal. York Corporation has a subsidiary entertainmentpany that signed many artists. Many female celebrities were lucky enough to be able to meet Zachary. Despite trying their best to involve themselves in a scandal with Zachary, they did not have such a chance. Some were so extreme that they ended up being cklisted instead. For some who had been cklisted, their future was ruined. Other artists learned from the mistake and did not dare approach Zachary anymore. Almost all the socialites in Wiltspoon had a crush on Zachary. Many years ago, Elisa fell in love with Zachary at first sight and had been infatuated with him for years. She had thought of getting over him, but she failed to do it eventually. Therefore, she fearlessly confessed to him and pursued him openly. She was the only wealthy young woman in Wiltspoon who had such courage. When Elisa confessed to Zachary and wooed him, many wealthy young women secretly perceived her as theughing stock and were waiting to see how it eventually worked out. If Zachary was not offended by Elisa¡¯s attempt to pursue him, they would be ready to do the same too. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. As they were secretly waiting for the oue, Elisa extinguished their hopes. Soon, there was news that Zachary had gotten married, which shattered the dreams of those women who had a crush on him. Although the Stones and the Yorks had always had conflicting views, Mrs. Stone must admit that the men from the York family were loyal to their partners. Any families would hope to marry their daughters off to the Yorks. Casting aside their wealth, the men from the Yorks were responsible and loyal. These qualities were attractive enough. Mrs. Stone had always known that Zachary would not be interested in her daughter. She had advised Elisa countless times, but Elisa would not give up on him. In the end, Zachary fell for her niece. In fact, Mrs. Stone was not very sure why Zachary fell in love with Serenity. It was not because she felt that her niece was not good enough, but because there were many more wealthy young elites in Wiltspoon who were more outstanding than Serenity. Even so, Zachary was not interested in them at all. He fell in love with Serenity, and this must be fate. If Mrs. Stone found out that Old Mrs. York had gone all out to matchmake Zachary and Serenity previously because of some religious conman¡¯s words, she would probably be speechless. ¡°Right now, I don¡¯t feel like speaking up for him. Now that you¡¯ve made up your mind, you must be firm. I believe you can do it.¡± Her two nieces were independent like she was in her youth. It was probably because the two sisters had lost their parents when they were at an early age. Also, they had received a lot of unjust and cruel treatment in society before they came of age. Hence, they were particrly tough. It was not easy to even be able to stay bubbly. From Mrs. Stone¡¯s perspective, her two nieces were able to remain positive in life regardless. ¡°I know, Aunt Audrey.¡± Mrs. Stone smiled in satisfaction before ncing at Elisa. Chapter 930 Chapter 930 Chapter 930 Elisa continued to eat. Seemingly, she was indifferent toward Zachary¡¯s arrival. At that moment, her mother¡¯s eyes were fixed on her. She looked up and said to her mother, ¡°Mom, why are you staring at me? Your nephew¨Cinw is here, not your son¨Cin w. Your son¨Cinw isn¡¯t found yet, so you still need to support me for several more years.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t want to get married, I can support you forever.¡± ¡°Please. I¡¯m 27 this year. If I round it up, I¡¯ll already be 30. My concern is that you¡¯re not worried about it. You might act like Jasmine¡¯s mother where you can¡¯t wait to kick me out of the house if there¡¯s a man pursuing me.¡± That was how Mrs. Sox treated Jasmine. Of course, Josh was outstanding and had a glib tongue. He managed to persuade the Soxes to take his side. The Soxes nearly made Josh marry Jasmine. ¡°Mom, since you¡¯re keen on meeting your nephew¨Cinw, hurry up and let him in. Now that we¡¯ve just started eating, you can ask him to join us. If you¡¯re not, then I¡¯ll drive him away. If he¡¯s willing to acknowledge me as his cousin¨Cinw, I¡¯ll speak up for him.¡± Serenity and Mrs. Stone were speechless. Atst, Serenity was the one going out. As it was Zachary¡¯s first time entering the Stones¡® house, he kept a low profile. He only brought Jim along rather than a group of bodyguards. While waiting, he got out of the car and stood at the gate of the vi. After a maid went in to inform the Stones, none of them came out. Even so, he did not show a trace of annoyance. Jim and the chauffeur stood behind Zachary, helping him to hold the gifts he had bought. Zachary had loathed the Stones, given that they werepetitors. They had turned against each other for many years. Now that they became rtives all of a sudden, Zachary and Clive found it hard to ept¨Cthey had to tread carefully while trying to leave no stone unturned for their business. In the past, Zachary might be seen as cruel as he set a clear boundary between kinship and business. Many people came to realize that Zachary¡¯s rtionship with Stone Group had softened ever since he took the initiative to expose his true identity to his belove wife. He continued to vie for more businesses but he was not as domineering as he use to be. At least, he gave Stone Group the chance to take a breather. Nevertheless, when Stone Group tried to take advantage of him, it did not manage. do so at all. Anyhow, even though the rtionship between the two corporations had b subtle, they remained locked in a stalemate with nopromise made. No matter how much Zachary disliked the Stones, Serenity was Mrs. Stone¡¯s niec after all. Zachary personally paid Serenity a visit for her sake. The moment Serenity came out, Zachary¡¯s gaze turned gentle, and his handsom face gradually rxed. As Serenity walked closer to him, he broke into a warm smi ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°What brings you here?¡± Zachary said, ¡°Since you were reunited with your aunt, I¡¯ve nevere for a visi Since I¡¯m avable at noon, I thought ofing over. I didn¡¯t expect you to be he either.¡± He would not admit that Serenity¡¯s movement was within his supervision. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. He did not restrict her freedom, but at the same time, he was afraid she would secretly leave Wiltspoon. Thus, she kept an eye on Serenity furtively. Deep down, Serenity understood his intention, but she did not expose it. If she di she would have a row with him again. Chapter 931 Chapter 931 Chapter 931 ¡°You chose such great timing. We¡¯re just about to eat.¡± While speaking, Serenity opened the gate of the vi for Zachary. Zachary said shamelessly, ¡°I¡¯m here to sponge food off you.¡± Serenity replied with a friendly sneer, ¡°I feel really sorry for you.¡± He shamelessly came to the Stones to sponge food off them for Serenity¡¯s sake. It would be a lie to say that he was calm. Serenity knew that when she was angry at him for lying to her, he was silently changing his ways for her. Zachary stared at her deeply and said affectionately, ¡°I¡¯ll show respect for those you care about. I¡¯ll be wherever you are without any fear.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t make it seem as though my aunt¡¯s house is frightening. She¡¯s very nice. ¡°By the way, Elisa is at home too.¡± Serenity reminded Zachary. Undoubtedly, she would not misunderstand Zachary for having feelings for Elisa. As he said, he did not ept Elisa¡¯s love or promise her anything. It was Elisa¡¯s own decision to be interested in him and pursue him. This had nothing to do with Zachary. Furthermore, Elisa had the freedom to do so. Serenity was worried Zachary would feel awkward. ¡°Oh.¡± Elisa¡¯s presence did not stop Zachary from walking into the house afterward. When Zachary and Serenity walked in together, he asked Serenity, ¡°What does Aunt Audrey like? ¡°I have no idea what she likes, so I casually bought some tonics.¡± Serenity took a glimpse of the things held by Jim and the chauffeur before she said, ¡± My aunt has everything. What matters is that you follow the etiquette rules.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°You actually treat your aunt as your elder. This is my first time paying a visit, so I hope to do my best.¡± As for her rtives in her hometown, she would treat them with hatred. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Those people would just cause her trouble and hold her back. Several days ago, Old Mr. Hunt brought a group of devoted children and grandchildren over to ask for money from Serenity. After Serenity rejected them, they acted in an unscrupulous and despicable manner. John made a public apology to Serenity and her sister on Twitter, but all he did was write some sentences perfunctorily. This caused them to feel that he had purposely made the apology only because Serenity had married into the Stones. Therefore, he had no choice but to yield. He did not actually apologize with sincerity. Then, the Hunts often informed the reporters to head to York Corporation with them. They wanted to ask Zachary for money, but Zachary forbade them to step into the office. With the fusses the Hunts made, the reporters were dumbfounded as they did not expect Serenity¡¯s rtives to be so shameless! The reporters felt great sympathy for Serenity. Clearly, those rtives of hers wanted to make her life in her husband¡¯s family difficult. Anyone would rage to have such shameless rtives who were utter troublemakers. However, the Hunts lost their businesses and jobs under Zachary¡¯s suppression and revenge. They had nothing to lose to him at that moment. Could Zachary be daring enough to kill all of them? Just as Josh had said to Zachary earlier, these awful people would be impossible to defeat unless they died. From time to time, they would kick up a fuss because they had lost everything that mattered most to them. Little did Zachary expect that the Hunts would be this extreme. It changed his perspective on the world. Of course, no one had the audacity to report the news that the Hunts brought the reporters to York Corporation to ask for money. Therefore, only witnesses at the scene, were aware of how despicable the Hunts were. As the news spread within a small circle, it did not cause amotion as the Hunts had anticipated. ¡°I¡¯m more than happy that you¡¯re here.¡± Serenity led Zachary to the main hall. ¡°Wash your hands and eat with us.¡± Zachary hummed in acknowledgment. Serenity led him to the basin to have his hands washed. After that, he followed her to the dining roomposedly. ¡°Uncle Zak,¡± Sonny addressed Zachary before he continued with his meal. Chapter 932 Chapter 932 Chapter 932 As usual, Sonny¡¯s face was covered with rice. There was also a lot of rice on the table. Mrs. Stone and Elisa left him alone. Mrs. Stone felt that the kid needed to learn how to clean the mess on his own. Even if he failed to handle it well at first, the more he practiced it, the better he would get at it. A few monthster, Sonny would turn three. It was about time to learn how to eat. Zachary touched Sonny¡¯s head before turning his eyes to Mrs. Stone and calling her Aunt Audrey¡± gently. Mrs. Stone replied in a soft tone, ¡°Mm. I¡¯ming. You can start eating.¡± A servant had already prepared the cutlery for Zachary. After greeting Mrs. Stone, Zachary turned his gaze to Elisa. She was focused on eating and did not beam like how she used to when she saw him. After Zachary pursed his lips, he said, ¡°Hi, cuz!¡± ¡°Ha-¡± ¡°Ahem-¡± Elisa spewed her food. Then, she choked and coughed. The person closest to Elisa was Mrs. Stone. She promptly lifted a ss of water and handed it to her daughter. ¡°Take a good gulp.¡± Elisa took the bowl and drank a few mouthfuls of water. Only then did she stop coughing. Seeing herself spewing food, she flushed. It was her first time forgetting who she was. The flush on Elisa¡¯s face got redder, particrly when Sonny¡¯s big bright eyes were fixated on her. The kid even used his fleshy hand to cover his bowl as he was worried that his aunt would spit food into his bowl. ¡°Zachary, y¨Cyou made me spit my food!¡± Elisa eximed to Zachary. Her food was sttered on the few dishes in front of her. The maid swiftly took away the dishes and asked the chef to prepare a few new dishes since Zachary was here. No one would dare treat the Hunt sisters with contempt, much less Zachary who was noble. Only after the maid finished cleaning the table did Elisa stop blushing. Zachary sat beside Serenity nonchntly and said indifferently, ¡°My cousin said that you¡¯re older than Seren. Since Seren acknowledges you as ¡®cuz¡®, I should do the same.¡± Elisa opened her mouth but could not refute his im. After some time, sheughed and said, ¡°I thought you were unwilling to acknowledge me as your cousin¨Cinw. Who knew you would surrender so quickly and formally address me that way?¡± Zachary did not utter a word. Anyhow, he had formally called Elisa ¡°cuz¡± to acknowledge her as family, and that meant he had shown respect for Serenity¡¯s family. As he said, he would respect people who mattered to Serenity. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Seeing Sonny covering his bowl, Elisa said, ¡°Sonny. You can continue eating. You don¡¯t need to cover your bowl.¡± Sonny asked naively, ¡°Aunt Elisa, are you going to do the spewing performance again?¡± Elisa rose to her feet and bent over. She extended her hand and pinched Sonny¡¯s face gently. ¡°You brat, how dare you tease me.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not a brat!¡± ¡°You brat.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not. You have a strong smell.¡± It was the scent of her perfume. In fact, the kid did not quite like perfume even if its scent was faint. This was because his mother and aunt had a naturally pleasant smell, unlike Elisa. Elisa was at a loss for words. Chapter 933 Chapter 933 Chapter 933 Mrs. Stone grinned and said to her daughter, ¡°Sonny dislikes the perfume you¡¯re using, huh? It¡¯s fine. Let¡¯s eat. Don¡¯t haggle over it with a three¨Cyear¨Cold kid.¡± Elisa raised her arm and smelled herself. Indeed, she sensed the faint smell of perfume. She recalled how Sonny disliked her scent. Since the kid could not tell that it was perfume, other people might misunderstand that she stank. ¡°I won¡¯t wear perfume anymore. This way, I can save my money as well.¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°Sonny was just talking nonsense. Elisa, don¡¯t me him. He¡¯s still young.¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°It¡¯s precisely because he¡¯s young that he was telling the truth.¡± Regarding the remark Sonny made about her smell, Elisa took it to heart. She was particrly fond of Sonny, yet he disliked her because of her smell. ¡°Let¡¯s start eating,¡± Mrs. Stone said with a grin. Now that she was old, she did not wear any perfume. She found it best to be natural. However, her daughter was still young. It was natural for her to be used to spraying perfume. ¡°Zachary, these are just ordinary dishes. I hope you¡¯re fine with them,¡± Mrs. Stone spoke to Zachary politely. Indeed, the dishes prepared by the chef were nothing special. The vegetables were actually grown by Mrs. Stone in her courtyard. Zachary quickly said, ¡°I¡¯m not a fussy eater. I eat everything.¡± Deep down, Mrs. Stone and her daughter criticized him, ¡®If you¡¯re not a fussy eater, then nobody is.¡± As someone who used to be infatuated with Zachary, Elisa knew his favorites very well. She knew that he was a fussy eater besides being a clean freak.¡± He imed he was not fussy only because of Serenity¡¯s presence. During the meal, Zachary was very attentive to his beloved wife beside him. He served her some food from time to time. When Sonny nced at him asionally, he would serve him food as well. The kid was eating with so much gusto that his stomach became full. After having a hearty meal, Sonny said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°Grandaunt Audrey, your food tastes yummy. It¡¯s as good as the food Mommy and Aunt Ser cook.¡± Mrs. Stone carried him joyfully. ¡°You shoulde to my house often then.¡± Sonny nodded and replied, ¡°I¡¯lle when Mommy and Aunt Sere.¡± Mrs. Stone wrapped the kid¡¯s head into her arms indulgently like how she carried her younger sister back then. ¡°Sonny, remember my number. Whenever you feel likeing over, just give me a call. I¡¯ll pick you up to have meals here.¡± Then, she said to Serenity, ¡°Same goes for the both of you. You both hardlye over. Do it more often in the future.¡± After that, she looked at Zachary, who was silently staring at her niece, and added, ¡± Zachary, you can come over with Seren when you¡¯re avable next time.¡± Zachary averted his gaze from his wife and said courteously, ¡°I¡¯ll certainlye whenever I¡¯m avable.¡± He took a glimpse of the piles of invitation cards on the coffee table. After Mrs. Stone caught sight of this little act of his, she took the initiative to say, ¡± Seren would like to attend the social gatherings with me.¡± Based on such a concise sentence, Zachary was aware of Serenity¡¯s intention. He knew that she was striving for him. He was not the only one making an effort. Serenity was too¨Cchanging and striving together. Chapter 934 Chapter 934 Chapter 934 Much as Zachary wished to maintain his current rtionship with Serenity so she could be happy and rxed, he did not say anything else. She took pity on Serenity as she was changing her life for his sake. However, he could not bring himself to let her go. He would attend social gatherings asionally to make an appearance, but he would soon leave. As for the women in his family, everyone would admire and tter themdies whenever they showed up. Hence, it would be impossible for them to get bullied. Nevertheless, there was one point Zachary would not overlook, namely that his mother and aunts grew up in wealthy families. His mother¡¯s and aunts¡® marriages with the Yorks were considered well¨Cmatched. At the thought of Serenity¡¯s circumstances, Zachary gradually came to understand her persistence. Zachary held Serenity¡¯s hand. To save his dignity in front of her aunt, Serenity did not shake his hand off. Zachary was just holding her hand tightly without saying a word. After staying at the Stones¡® ce for a while, he had to return to the office, so he took his leave. Serenity held Sonny¡¯s hand while walking to see Zachary off. Zachary walked steadily and slowly with the intention of having a talk with Serenity. ¡°Seren, I think I don¡¯t understand you well enough. I¡¯ll learn more about you and put myself in your shoes,¡± Zachary said tenderly. ¡°Having said that, I greatly sympathize with you. If you¡¯re tired of learning to blend in with my circle, you can remain in your current state. I can choose not to attend any social gatherings, but I can¡¯t afford to lose you. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°My wife doesn¡¯t need to be at anyone¡¯s mercy.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t be at anyone¡¯s mercy, but I just don¡¯t want to be the object of ridicule and hold you back.¡± Zachary paused to look at her. He then said with a deep voice, ¡°My reputation in Wiltspoon isn¡¯t that great. When do I actually care about those things? What matters is that I¡¯m fine with my wife¡¯s background, and it¡¯s none of their business. We¡¯re not relying on them either.¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes settled on him. A whileter, she stretched out her hand and caressed his face gently. Then, she said softly, ¡°We¡¯re in the same boat, heading in the same direction. If both of us can¡¯t face hardships together, we¡¯ll fall into the water and fail to reach the shore together. ¡°Even if we can¡¯t stand at the bow together, we must hold onto the stern and not fall into the water. ¡°Zachary, give me some time to adapt to it. If I really can¡¯t do it and blend in¡­ I won¡¯t force myself either. If you refuse to get a divorce anytime soon, I won¡¯t force you. If you ever think that I¡¯m a drag and dislike me, just let me know. I¡¯ll immediately leave and not pester you.¡± As long as she had done her level best, she would not regret it. That was Serenity¡¯s mindset. Zachary could not be bothered about Sonny¡¯s presence. He forcefully wrapped Serenity into his arms and said in a husky voice, ¡°We must never part! ¡°I¡¯ve never gone back on my word. As long as you¡¯re willing to cooperate, I¡¯ll settle it. I can make you a shareholder of York Corporation anytime, and you¡¯ll be the richestdy in Wiltspoon. I¡¯m willing to work under you forever and let you get richer.¡± Serenity sighed silently. She eventually put her hands around his waist. This was her first time hugging him gently since she found out that he lied to her. Although they were hugging, their hearts were so close yet so far from each other. He was willing to sacrifice everything for her, while she was willing to work hard and learn to be more outstanding for his sake. She hoped that she would be able to walk side by side with him one day, rather than have him drag her along. ¡°Aunt Ser? Uncle Zak?¡± The third wheel lifted his head and blinked his big eyes. Clueless, he rested his gaze on the two adults. Serenity promptly pushed Zachary away. Subsequently, she bent over and carried Sonny. She then said to Zachary, ¡°You may leave for work.¡± Zachary pinched Sonny¡¯s face lightly. ¡°You¡¯re such a third wheel.¡± Chapter 935 Chapter 935 Chapter 935 ¡°I¡¯m going to work now.¡± Zachary walked out of the Stones¡® vi reluctantly and left under Serenity¡¯s gaze. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Sonny touched the part of his cheek where his uncle pinched, then he asked Serenity, ¡°Aunt Ser, Uncle Zak just called me a third wheel. My name is Sonny, not al third wheel.¡± While carrying Sonny, Serenity returned to the house and said gently, ¡°Your uncle was just joking with you. You¡¯re not a third wheel but a peacemaker.¡± If she brought Sonny along to meet Zachary, the two of them would control their temper and avoid conflict. This would be helpful in improving their rtionship and trust in each other. They were very concerned about the healthy environment in which the child grew up. Therefore, Sonny acted as a reconciler between the couple even though he was not their child. ¡°I¡¯m Sonny.¡± ¡°Fine, fine. You¡¯re Sonny.¡± Only then was Sonny satisfied. He had no idea what a third wheel or peacemaker was. All he knew was that his full name was Sonny Brown, and his nickname was Sonny. After Serenity returned to the house, Mrs. Stone asked her to go upstairs and enter Elisa¡¯s walk¨Cin closet, which was filled with Elisa¡¯s clothes. Mrs. Stone said, ¡°Seren, your height and build are simr to Elisa¡¯s. You can try on her clothes first. I¡¯ll see which type of clothes can fully portray your natural elegance.¡± Serenity turned her eyes to Elisa, who said generously, ¡°Seren, go ahead and try on my clothes since my mom asked you to. We¡¯re cousins. I don¡¯t mind you wearing my clothes. What¡¯s more, there are many clothes I bought when I was fond of them. After I bought them, I ced them here without having worn them before. ¡°You can wear some on my behalf. I¡¯ll then have an excuse to keep them.¡± Serenity was amused. When Elisa loved someone, she would be genuinely nice to them and not put on airs. Of course, she would embarrass those with whom she could not get along. Besides spending the entire afternoon trying on clothes, Serenity was dragged by her aunt and cousin to do hair and facial treatments. Evening came around and that was the peak hour of the businesses near Wiltspoon School, especially the bookstore. Since school had reopened, students needed to buy all kinds of materials. The stock of some materials arrivedte, which caused students to frequent the bookstore over the two weeks and ask if the materials were in stock. At that moment, Serenity¡¯s bookstore was crowded with students who wanted to buy reference material and stationery. Consequently, Jasmine and Mrs. Lane had their hands full. When Serenity could note over to help out at the store, she would arrange for Mrs. Lane to help so that Jasmine would not be rushed off her feet.. A brand new SUV was parked at the entrance of the bookstore. When the car door was pushed open, Josh got out of the car. He was dressed in a white suit, holding a bouquet of flowers. At the sight that many students were buying things, Josh ced the bouquet back in the car. He removed his coat and took off the expensive watch on his right wrist. Then, he put them in the car. After shutting the door, he made his way to the bookstore and rolled up his sleeves, ready to help Jasmine. ¡°Jasmine.¡± Josh went into the store and greeted Jasmine. ¡°You¡¯re busy. I happen to be here. Is there anything I can help with?¡± ¡°Just help them find anything they need.¡± Jasmine directly got him to help out as he wished. She did not ask Josh to process the payments since he was unsure of the prices. The three of them had their hands full until it was time for students to do self- revision. ¡°Don¡¯t you have a social function to attend tonight?¡± When they could finally rx, Jasmine had the chance to speak to Josh. Chapter 936 Chapter 936 Chapter 936 ¡°My boss suddenly showed mercy and attended the social function on his own. I¡¯m quite rxed, so I came over to pick you up after work. Let¡¯s have a meal together. I made a reservation and even ordered the dishes at Wiltspoon Hotel. Once we arrive, we can straight away have the dishes served without waiting. ¡°I¡¯ve also bought two movie tickets. After dinner, we can watch a movie. It¡¯s rare that I have so much leisure time.¡± Ever since Josh became Zachary¡¯s administrative executive, he had been really busy. He barely had nights with no social functions to attend. Josh was busiest during the period when Zachary and Serenity¡¯s rtionship improved. It was because Zachary always assigned thepany¡¯s matters to Josh while he spent time with his wife. When Jasmine was about to speak, Josh suddenly swung around and ran out. Jasmine was dazed for a moment before she asked Mrs. Lane, ¡°I haven¡¯t said anything, have I? Why did he run out all of a sudden?¡± Mrs. Lane said, ¡°Just now, I was standing outside and saw Mr. Bucham getting out of the car with a bouquet of flowers. He noticed the crowd in the sto e, so he put the bouquet back in the car. After that, he removed his coat and came in. ¡°So now, he¡¯s probably going to get the bouquet.¡± Mrs. Lane said with a grin, ¡°Mr. Bucham cares about you. You¡¯re blessed like the missus.¡± At the mention of the missus, Mrs. Lane¡¯s smile faded. She sighed and said, ¡°I wonder what the missus¡¯s decision is. Mr. Zachary has lost his appetite because of the missus, and he has thinned down. We feel great pity for him.¡± Of course, his mother, Mrs. York, was the one who sympathized with Mr. Zachary the most. As it was Mr. Zachary¡¯s mistake, Mrs. York could not cause the missus trouble. Also, Old Mrs. York was still around inmand. ording to Old Mrs. York, the couple¡¯s conflict should be solved by themselves. No one should meddle in it unless Zachary asked the elders for help. ¡°Zachary and Seren are having a hard time. Although Liberty is the one on diet, Seren has lost a few pounds as well.¡± Serenity did not let this issue affect her diet. She became slightly thinner probably because she had been pretty preupied. ¡°Ms. Sox and Mr. Bucham must take care of yourselves.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Mrs. Lane, do you think Josh and I are well¨Cmatched?¡± The Buchams had strict criteria for selecting marriage partners. ¡°Yes. Both of you are well¨Cmatched in appearance.¡±All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine was speechless. Ever since her parents and aunt knew that Josh was going after her, they all told her to hurriedly ept his love and not miss the boat. Even Shawn told Jasmine that Josh was great. It made Jasmine feel that she would be beaten if she rejected Josh¡¯s love. Josh put on his coat again. Then, he held the bouquet of flowers and walked in. He walked up to Jasmine and handed the bouquet to her before he said affectionately,¡± Jasmine, these flowers are for you.¡± Jasmine epted the bouquet. ¡°Thanks.¡± ¡°d that you like it.¡± He then took out a red Tiffany box from his pocket. After opening the box, he handed it to Jasmine. ¡°I thought this charm bracelet suits you, so I bought it.¡± He pulled Jasmine¡¯s hand over and put the bracelet on her wrist. Jasmine did not decline his gift, knowing that she was unable to do so. Josh might be all smiles most of the time and seem more approachable than Zachary, but he was actually domineering. After receiving such an expensive gift, she had to think about what gift to return him with so that she would not owe him. As the saying goes, ¡°One good turn deserves another.¡± Chapter 937 Chapter 937 Chapter 937 Jasmine ordered food delivery for Mrs. Lane and passed the store key to her. She said, ¡°Mrs. Lane, you can close the store and go home whenever you want after you have dinner. You can keep the key or pass it to your missus.¡± ¡°Missus said that she won¡¯t be avable for the next few days. So I¡¯lle over to help out on her behalf. Let me keep the key.¡± Mrs. Lane added with a smile, ¡°Ms. Sox and Mr. Bucham, both of you can go ahead and eat together. I can watch the store.¡± Mrs. Lane had helped in the store for quite a long period. She could remember the book prices. Even if she was alone, it would not affect the operation of the store. Jessica felt at ease when she left with Josh. They headed to Wiltspoon Hotel for dinner. ¡°How has Zachary beentely?¡± Jasmine asked concernedly. While driving, Josh said, ¡°He¡¯s busier than ever. He¡¯s been working around the clock. like Superman. I could hardly keep up with him. Those working under him have been. grumbling, and many of them expect me to advise him. ¡°Right now, I can¡¯t do so. Only Serenity has the ability to do that. But it¡¯s been days. since the couple met. Grandma May forbade Zachary to meet Serenity as she wanted the couple to calm down. ¡°The couple just got to meet today. I wonder how their talk went. After Zachary returned, he did not pour out his problems to me but continued to work hard. At noon, he went to the Stones and cheered up a lot after that. ¡°Even so, he worked very hard. I think he has lost a few pounds.¡± Josh tilted his head and took a glimpse of Jasmine. Then, he smiled and said, Jasmine, both of us shouldn¡¯t follow in their footsteps. We must continue to be lovey- dovey and trust each other. I won¡¯t lie to you, and you mustn¡¯t hide anything from me as well.¡± ¡°Who wants to be lovey¨Cdovey with you? What can I hide from you?¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°I think we¡¯re now lovey¨Cdovey. Lovey¨Cdovey isn¡¯t about saying ¡®I love you¡® every day. It¡¯s shown through the little details in life.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°All I see is that you try to butter my parents up whenever you¡¯re avable. You also treat my brother like your own.¡°. Josh was naturally brilliant and had a glib tongue. Therefore, he was able to coax Jasmine¡¯s family into favoring him. ¡°Because they¡¯re your family members, who¡¯ll be my family in the future. It¡¯s natural to treat my family well.¡± ¡°How shameless of you. I haven¡¯t even promised you anything, yet you¡¯ve treated my family as yours.¡± Josh said unabashedly, ¡°One has to be shameless when going after their wives. It was because Zachary cared so much about his dignity that he ended up in this state now.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine did not know whether tough or cry. ¡°You see Zachary¡¯s situation as a cautionary tale, don¡¯t you?¡± ¡°I¡¯m just stating facts. If Zachary had listened to my advice, he and Serenity wouldn¡¯t have ended where they are right now.¡± Jasmine asked, ¡°Are you very experienced in rtionships?¡± ¡°No, actually. You¡¯re the first and only girl I truly love.¡± Josh did not get tricked by her question. Even though he used to have a crush on a female ssmate, that was in the past. He could not even recall that ssmate¡¯s appearance. Later, he was too busy to get into a rtionship. He did not meet any girls who could capture his heart too. At first, he did not show interest in Jasmine either. When Zachary and Serenity got married unexpectedly, he helped Zachary investigate Serenity¡¯s background. While at it, he figured out Serenity¡¯s best friend, Jasmine¡¯s background. Chapter 938 Chapter 938 Chapter 938 At that time, Josh did not take Jasmine seriously at all. It was only until Aunt Rachel stopped setting up blind dates for Jasmine that he started to pay attention to Jasmine during Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party. He found Jasmine interesting. After going on a blind date with Jasmine, he felt that she was his cup of tea. Simr to him, she enjoyed joining in on the fun and gossiping. Coincidentally, he knew a lot of juicy gossip. He could share it with someone who was eager to listen to gossip. Little by little, the thought of marrying Jasmine urred to him. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°After all, I¡¯m already in my 30s. I havemon love knowledge. Furthermore, onlookers see most of the game. I can see things more clearly than Zachary and became his love consultant. Unfortunately, his rtionship with Serenity is still a mess despite the help of an excellent love consultant.¡± Jasmine let out a sigh. ¡°Seren isn¡¯t cold¨Chearted. It was because Zachary concealed his identity and lied to her. After Zachary allowed her to stay in her sister¡¯s house, her anger is slowly subsiding. ¡°Seren¡¯s current worry is that there¡¯s a huge gap between Zachary and her in reality. She¡¯s suffering from psychological stress because of Zachary and her future. Casting Seren aside, there¡¯s a huge gap between our lives too. Having said that, my condition is much better than Seren¡¯s.¡± Jasmine had several apartments for rent and half a row of shop lots. If she sold them off, her assets would amount to over 100 million dors based on the current market prices. Of course, she could notpare with the Buchams. Josh¡¯s parents had a fewpanies. Although they paled inparison with Julian¡¯s family, they were a wealthy family that kept a low profile. Josh did not want to take over his parents¡®pany and went to York Corporation to realize his potential instead. ¡°We¡¯re well¨Cmatched. There¡¯s no gap between us at all.¡± Jasmine nced at him before she smiled and said, ¡°I don¡¯t feel inferior, nor do I think I¡¯m unqualified to be with you.¡± As a local of Wiltspoon, Jasmine¡¯s father built wealth through opportune property investments. Since young, Jasmine had been living a rich life. As much as she disliked marrying into a wealthy family, she would not think that she was unqualified. To her, there was a lot of adversity to jostle through in wealthy families. Her aunt, for example, suffered a lot after marrying Mr. Lowe. Jasmine wanted to find a Wiltspoon local who had a stable job and several buildings for rent like her so that they were well¨Cmatched. After she got married, she would discuss who would collect the rent the next day with her partner. That would be theirmon topic. ¡°Seren isn¡¯t inferior. She¡¯s just too rational.¡± Serenity had to step into the circle that she had never wanted to. That was way too stressful for her. Josh understood her circumstances. As the two of them were talking about rtionships, they soon arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel. Josh did not go into the basement parking lot. Instead, he parked in front of the hotel. Just as Jasmine wanted to get out of the car, Josh reminded her, ¡°The bouquet I gave to you.¡± ¡°Why should I bring the bouquet along for dinner?¡± While mumbling, Jasmine got out of the car with the bouquet nevertheless. Then, Josh spontaneously held her hand and brought her to the hotel. ¡°Josh?¡± A high¨Cpitched female voice rang out. It was familiar to Josh but strange to Jasmine. ¡°Hurry up.¡± Josh pulled Jasmine to quicken her pace. While being pulled away, Jasmine turned around and saw a beautiful middle¨Caged woman rushing over in high heels. She looked like Josh, or rather, Josh looked like that beautiful middle¨Caged woman. Chapter 939 Chapter 939 Chapter 939 ¡°Josh!¡± After Mrs. Bucham called her son, she saw that he was pulling a young girl to hurry inside to shy away from her. Mrs. Bucham could not help but scurry forward. She caught up with them shortly and stopped in front of Josh. ¡°Josh, you brat. Didn¡¯t you hear me calling you?¡± Mrs. Bucham gave him the piece of her mind first. When she turned her gaze to Jasmine, she wore a smile and said to Jasmine, ¡°Youngdy, don¡¯t be intimidated. I had to tell Josh off. How dare he turn a deaf ear to his mother¡¯s words and run away when his mother was calling him!¡± ¡°Mom.¡± Never in his wildest dreams did he think that he would bump into his mother here. Mrs. Bucham checked Jasmine out from head to toe and saw her holding a bouquet of flowers. Even though Josh had let go of Jasmine¡¯s hand, Mrs. Bucham clearly saw her son holding Jasmine¡¯s hand just now. Giving flowers and holding hands were daily acts of a couple. When did that brat get into a rtionship? He did not even let his family know. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. After Jasmine was sure that the beautiful middle¨Caged woman was Josh¡¯s mother, she openly addressed the woman ¡°Mrs. Bucham¡°. Mrs. Bucham acknowledged Jasmine¡¯s greeting with a grin. After that, she shoved into the space between the pair to stand beside Jasmine. She affably pulled Jasmine¡¯s hand which was not holding the bouquet. ¡°Youngdy, what¡¯s your name? Are you Josh¡¯s girlfriend?¡± Unexpectedly, Jasmine was already meeting his parents. If she imed that she was not Josh¡¯s girlfriend, Mrs. Bucham probably would not believe it. She shot a look at Josh before introducing herself. ¡°Mrs. Bucham, my name is Jasmine Sox. I¡¯m a female friend of Josh.¡± ¡°A female friend is known as a girlfriend. That means you¡¯re Josh¡¯s girlfriend. Jasmine Sox sounds familiar to me. Have we met before?¡± Mrs. Bucham cordially pulled Jasmine and walked together. Jasmine answered honestly, ¡°I¡¯ve never seen you before. You¡¯ve heard of my name probably because of the spread of my embarrassing experience. Several months ago, I attended Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday party with my aunt, Mrs. Lowe. I drank a lot that night, and Iy on the floor sleeping. That embarrassing incident has probably spread all over in your circle.¡± Mrs. Bucham burst intoughter before she said, ¡°It was you, huh? No wonder your name sounds familiar. You¡¯re Mrs. Lowe¡¯s niece. Mrs. Lowe always brings you along to attend social gatherings. I believe we¡¯ve met in some gatherings, but we just didn¡¯t speak or greet each other.¡± The Bucham women had always kept a low profile. Even if they made an appearance in social gatherings, they would hardly socialize with others. All they did was have a quick talk with the organizers of the gatherings. They would then sit down in a corner and take their leave after meals. Even so, this did not mean that they were unclear about the happenings in the upper ss. As Jasmine said, the incident of her lying on the floor had spread all over high society. ¡°When did you get into a rtionship with Josh? He didn¡¯t mention anything about it when he got home. Apparently, it¡¯s been a long while since hest returned home.¡± Mrs. Bucham wondered for how long her son was nning to hide it from her if she had not bumped into him and Jasmine here. He did not even let his family know about the girl he was interested in. Josh walked with them and exined, ¡°Mom, Jasmine has just told you that she¡¯s my female friend. If I¡¯d told you about it, you would bring a bunch of people over. What if Jasmine got a fright and refused to meet me anymore?¡± Mrs. Bucham understood that her son had not won Jasmine¡¯s heart, but that was fine. Since her son was interested in Jasmine, Jasmine would be within his grasp. Mrs. Bucham said with a smirk, ¡°Don¡¯t listen to Josh¡¯s exaggeration. We¡¯re very easygoing and won¡¯t make things difficult for youngsters. Jasmine,e and drop by my house with Josh whenever you¡¯re free.¡± Chapter 940 Chapter 940 Chapter 940 Jasmine smiled and replied, ¡°I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll disturb you.¡± ¡°No worries. I enjoy having you around, in fact.¡± Mrs. Bucham brought Jasmine upstairs as if she knew in which room Josh was going to have a meal. Once they entered the room, it happened to be the private room that Josh had reserved. After being seated, Mrs. Bucham took off her fine charm bracelet. Then, she lifted Jasmine¡¯s hand with the bracelet that Josh gave to Jasmine, and she removed that bracelet. After that, Mrs. Bucham put her bracelet on Jasmine¡¯s wrist and said, ¡°Jasmine, this is our first time meeting. I didn¡¯t prepare anything, so I¡¯ll give you my bracelet as a gift. That bracelet was given by Josh, right? The fineness of this charm bracelet is better.¡± Jasmine was born into a wealthy family and had a wealthy aunt. Therefore, she hade across all kinds of jewelry and could determine the value of the jewelry. The bracelet Josh gave her was quite costly. It was estimated to be worth a hundred thousand dors. As for the charm bracelet that Mrs. Bucham gave to her, its elegance was better than Josh¡¯s gift. It looked clear and beautiful. No doubt, it was a high¨Cgrade bracelet. It was certainly valuable. Jasmine did not dare ept such a precious gift. She wanted to take the bracelet off and return it to Mrs. Bucham, but Mrs. Bucham stopped her. ¡°Jasmine, do you think my gift isn¡¯t valuable enough? You must ept it. If you don¡¯t, it means that you think it¡¯s not valuable enough.¡± Jasmine responded helplessly, ¡°Mrs. Bucham, this is too precious.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not. It might seem precious, but it¡¯s just a bit more costly than the bracelet Josh gave you.¡± Mrs. Bucham insisted on giving Jasmine the bracelet as a gift. Jasmine turned her eyes to Josh, seemingly asking for help. However, Josh gazed at her smilingly. After noticing her imploring look, heughed and said, ¡°Jasmine, since my mom has given the bracelet to you, you should just ept it. You¡¯re the only person who deserves to wear it.¡± The bracelet was one of the Buchams¡® heirlooms. The bracelet that Mrs. Bucham wore was not as precious as the one worn by the wife of the head of the Buchams. Anyway, Mrs. Bucham¡¯s bracelet was a lot more. precious than Josh¡¯s present. The head of Buchams¡® wife said that she wanted to pass her heirloom to her eldest daughter¨Cinw. However, her son was still single. She was worried no one would Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. inherit the heirloom. Mrs. Bucham heard that from the head of Buchams¡® wife. She did say she would pass the bracelet to her eldest daughter¨Cinw too. Now that Mrs. Bucham had given the bracelet to Jasmine, it meant that she acknowledged Jasmine as her daughter¨Cinw. Sure enough, Mrs. Bucham was Josh¡¯s mother. She behaved in the same way as he did, or rather, his behavior resembled his mother¡¯s. Mrs. Bucham put Josh¡¯s bracelet on Jasmine¡¯s other hand. Jasmine was at a loss for words. Given that she was unable to reject Mrs. Bucham, she readily epted it. ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Bucham.¡± Mrs. Buchamughed and said, ¡°You¡¯re wee. I¡¯m very fond of you. By the way, are your parents avable? I¡¯ll let Josh¡¯s dad know that I¡¯m going to ask your parents out for a meal.¡± Jasmine thought, ¡®Is this going to be the asion where both our parents meet?¡® It finally hit her why Josh was not in a hurry to let his family know that he was pursuing her. Indeed, Josh¡¯s family was eager. Chapter 941 Chapter 941 Chapter 941 Jasmine thought about how her parents liked Josh. If their parents were to meet, they would likely start discussing their nuptials immediately. And so, she said. tactfully, ¡°Mrs. Bucham, my parents are currently traveling and may only be back in a few months.¡± Mrs. Bucham said regretfully, ¡°Oh, they¡¯re out traveling? Then we¡¯ll wait for them toe back and have a meal together. Jasmine, have your parents met Josh yet?¡± ¡°They have.¡± ¡°What did they think of him?¡± Jasmine looked at Josh and said, ¡°I didn¡¯t ask my parents that because when Josh came to my house, ny percent of the reason was to look for my brother and treat him to a meal, so my parents think he likes my brother.¡± Mrs. Bucham was at a loss for words. Josh¡¯s handsome face appeared slightly embarrassed but he did not try to exin himself. He knew Jasmine still did not want their parents to meet yet. He was not in a hurry anyway¨Cit was enough for him to be able to bring home this beautiful woman this. year. ¡°Jasmine, Josh definitely likes you. If he was interested in men, his first victim would have been Zachary. Oh, right. Zachary¡¯s already married and his wife is your best friend. It¡¯s fated! Zachary and Josh are best friends too.¡± A pair of best friends getting married to another pair of best friends. This was good! Mrs. Bucham exined on her son¡¯s behalf, afraid that Jasmine would misunderstand her son was bisexual. Jasmine said, smiling, ¡°I know, Mrs. Bucham.¡± Mrs. Bucham¡¯s handphone suddenly rang and after she picked up the call, she said to the two, ¡°Jasmine, I have something to do so I¡¯ll make a move first. You and Josh can take your time eating and watch a movie or two after you¡¯re done. It¡¯s rare for this son of mine to have free time.¡± ¡°You¡¯re not eating together with us?¡± ¡°No, I have a lunch meeting too. The client has arrived, so I have to go. I can¡¯t make them wait too long.¡± Mrs. Bucham said as she got up. She reluctantly left after reminding Josh of a few things. Jasmine breathed a sigh of a relief after Mrs. Bucham left and said to Josh, ¡°Your mom is very enthusiastic.¡± ¡°All the elders in my family are enthusiastic. I know how they are, so I never told them I was pursuing you. They won¡¯t be able to stop themselves from sending betrothal gifts to your house before we¡¯re even engaged.¡± ¡°They¡¯re even more impatient than my parents¡­¡± Jasmine said. Her parents and rtives all had a good impression of Josh to the point it seemed if she did not ept Josh, she would be lynched by them. Still, they were not as eager as Mrs. Bucham and gave her time to think about it, since this was her marriage and her life after all. Her parents only gave her advice¨Cit was still her decision in the end. Meanwhile, Serenity stopped in front of her sister¡¯s shop. Then, she carried Sonny down from the car. Liberty had already packed everything and was just waiting for her sister to pick her up and go back to the ce she rented. ¡°Liberty.¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mommy.¡± Liberty came out to wee them. Seeing her sister who seemed like a whole new person, she first appraised her, thenmented, smiling, ¡°Seren, you look so stunning after you changed your hairstyle. Not bad¨Cthis hairstyle really suits you.¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey and Elisa helped with the selection. Does it look good? They also picked out a lot of clothes for me. I¡¯ll let you see after we get back.¡± The new clothes and shoes were all in her car. Almost all of her many years of savings were practically spent after going shopping with her aunt. The card Zachary had given her for household expenses did have money in it, but Serenity did not use his card. ¡°Have you eaten, Liberty?¡± ¡°You guys took a while, so I cooked some noodles for myself in the shop.¡± Liberty picked her son up and asked with concern, ¡°What did Aunt Audrey say?¡± Chapter 942 Chapter 942 Chapter 942 Serenity helped her sister close up before getting into the car with her. ¡°I asked Aunt Audrey for help and she was very happy to help. Oh, right! I have some good news. Alice is pregnant.¡± Alice had gone for a medical check¨Cup and found that her difort as ofte was due to pregnancy. She had been married to Clive for many years but had not had children not because of her body but because they had a very good rtionship and wanted to have a few years to themselves. After Mrs. Stone and the Hunt sisters found each other, Alice saw how cute Sonny was and after discussing it with Clive, decided to start trying for a kid. They did not expect they would seed so quickly and without her realizing too. After discovering she was pregnant, Alice went straight to her husband¡¯s office to look for him and tell him the good news. The husband and wife were so happy celebrating on their own that they only announced that Alice was pregnant to the rest of the family that evening after returning home. The Stones were happy beyond belief. Serenity was happy for Alice too. She quite liked this cousin¨Cinw of hers. ¡°Aunt Audrey must be really happy.¡± ¡°She is. Alice hasn¡¯t been feeling welltely and only found out she was pregnant after going to the hospital to get a check¨Cup. Today, Zachary suddenly asked me how long I go between check¨Cups. Is he trying to test the waters to see if I¡¯m pregnant?¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. After getting in the car, Liberty said, ¡°Has Aunt Floe for you this month? If not, you could go and get checked out.¡± Serenity was silent for a moment. ¡°If you hadn¡¯t asked, I would have overlooked itpletely. I think it¡¯s about two dayste.¡± ¡°Two days? We can¡¯t be sure that it¡¯s a pregnancy then. Many people get itte. You¡¯ve gotten itte in the past too, right? If it still doesn¡¯te for another week, you should go to the hospital to get checked or go to the drugstore to get one of those early pregnancy tests. It can be pretty urate.¡± Serenity started the car. ¡°I¡¯ll go buy one when we pass by a drugstoreter. How long do I have to be pregnant for it to be detected by the early pregnancy test?¡± She remembered when her sister initially got pregnant with Sonny, Liberty had tested herself with a pregnancy test before going to the hospital to get tested. ¡°Generally, it can be detected half a month into your pregnancy. But because of how early it is, the second red line will take a long time to show up. It¡¯ll be a faint positive so people often don¡¯t realize it.¡± Serenity counted the days since she had herst period and taking into ount thest time she and Zachary slept together, it had already been more than twenty days. since. If she had managed to get pregnant, it would likely be able to be detected. She decided she would first buy a pregnancy test to test herself. On the way back to Liberty¡¯s ce, there were a number of drugstores. Serenity parked in front of Wiltspoon Pharmacy and said to her sister, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m going to buy a pregnancy test.¡°. ¡°Alright.¡± Liberty changed her position as she held her son. The little guy had fallen asleep not long after getting in the car. Serenity left the car and entered the pharmacy to buy a pregnancy test, but worried that it would be inurate, she bought extra. After buying the pregnancy tests, nervousness made itself apparent on her face as she wondered if she was pregnant. If she was, should she tell Zachary? Even if she did not tell him, he probably would find out anyway. His men had been watching her every move in secret all this while. Who knew? The news that she entered Wiltspoon Pharmacy to buy pregnancy tests might not even take ten minutes to reach Zachary. Serenity knew very well how domineering her man was. After she came out from the drugstore and as she drove her car away, the two bodyguards who protected Serenity in secret entered Wiltspoon Pharmacy, asked the employee working there, and found out that their boss¡¯s wife entered the store earlier to buy pregnancy tests. Was the missus pregnant? This was extremely good news! As long as the missus was pregnant, the couple would make up for the child¡¯s sake. Everyone¡¯s days of suffering would be over then. Thus, the bodyguards immediately informed Zachary of Serenity entering the pharmacy to buy pregnancy tests. Chapter 943 Chapter 943 Chapter 943 When Zachary received the call from the bodyguards, he was at Wiltspoon Hotel, having a meeting with a client. After hearing from the bodyguards that Serenity had entered the drugstore to buy pregnancy tests, his hand holding the phone clenched, although he was still rtively calm. He said in his deep voice, ¡°Got it.¡± After hanging up, Zachary immediately ced a call to Callum. ¡°Hey.¡± ¡°Callum, where are you now?¡± ¡°I¡¯m still in the office, doing some overtime.¡± Lately, his cousin had been working nonstop and everyone under him was tired to their bones. Even Callum, as the COO, was also having a hard time. After dinner, he still had to work overtime. ¡°Come to the hotel now to discuss our coboration with Mr. Fletcher. We¡¯ve had a few meetings about this, so you should know about it.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Callum did not even dare ask where Zachary was going at thest minute. His cousin told him to go to the hotel and off he went. The York Corporation office was not far from Wiltspoon Hotel. Very quickly, Callum arrived at the hotel. After reaching the meeting room, he noticed his cousin was long gone from the hotel and only Kevin York, who was in charge of the hotel operations, and his secretary were waiting with Mr. Fletcher and his associates. Kevin¡¯s main field of upation was in the food and beverage industry, so all the hotels under York Corporation¡¯s banner were managed by him. Kevin was not familiar with the other projects within thepany, so as he apanied Mr. Fletcher, he could only talk about some other topics. Seeing that Callum had arrived, Kevin breathed a sigh of relief. ¡°Mr. Fletcher, the COO is here, so you can discuss it with him.¡± Kevin York hastily handed over Mr. Fletcher and his associates to Callum as he prepared to withdraw himself. He did not ever want to get caught by Zachary to fill in for him at thest minute again. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Callum had met Mr. Fletcher a few times before and he smiled as he shook hands. with him first before sitting down beside Kevin. ¡°Where¡¯s Zachary?¡± Callum asked Kevin in a whisper. ¡°He left. I was caught at thest minute to fill in for him. I¡¯m not familiar with thepany¡¯s other projects so now that you¡¯re here and taking over, I¡¯m leaving.¡± Callum acknowledged him with a hum. Kevin smoothly took his leave after making his excuses, taking his secretary with him. Elsewhere, Serenity brought her sister and her nephew back to their ce. They had all eaten prior so there was no need to busy themselves in the kitchen again. Serenity raced to the bathroom as soon as she entered the house. Liberty walked to the sofa to sit down, carrying her son. She tried to wake him as he had not showered yet. After Sonny opened his eyes and looked around, he closed his eyes again. He wanted to keep sleeping. Liberty had no choice but to carry him back to his room and let him sleep first. Aftering out of the room, she walked to the bathroom and knocked on the door, asking her sister who was inside, ¡°Seren, how is it?¡± The door to the bathroom opened. Serenity came out and she passed the pregnancy test to her sister for her to see. ¡°I didn¡¯t take the test.¡± Liberty nced at it and asked her, ¡°Why not? Do you not know how to use it?¡± ¡°After opening it, I realized I got my period. That¡¯s why I didn¡¯t take the test.¡± From Serenity¡¯s tone, Liberty could not tell if she was grateful or disappointed. ¡°Well, I did say you¡¯re only two dayste so you might not be pregnant. It¡¯s still pretty normal for it to be early orte within a week¡¯s time,¡± Liberty said. ¡°I just wanted to take the test so the next time Zachary suggests a check¨Cup again, I can tell him clearly that he isn¡¯t going to be a father yet.¡± Since the packaging had already been ripped open, even if it had not been used, Serenity threw the pregnancy test into the trash and walked to the sofa to sit down with her sister. She picked up the TV remote and turned the TV on. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ve been with Zachary for a while now. We haven¡¯t been deliberately using contraception, but¡­ I¡¯m not pregnant yet. Could there something be wrong with my body?¡± Serenity could not help but suspect that there was something wrong with her body since she had not managed to get pregnant. ¡°You get medical examinations every year, so there shouldn¡¯t be a problem. When ites to this, fate alsoes into y. If the time hasn¡¯te yet, even if you do it every day, you won¡¯t be able to get pregnant. So many couples have great rtionships and have been married longer than you two but still haven¡¯t gotten pregnant.¡± Chapter 944 Chapter 944 Chapter 944 ¡°You shouldn¡¯t feel too much pressure about it either. Sometimes, you¡¯ll get affected when there¡¯s too much stress too. Anyway, let nature take its course. If you still don¡¯t manage to get pregnant in two or three years, then you should go and get checked to find out the reason for it. Some couples did not get pregnant even after a few years but even after getting examined, no problems turned up. Then after getting divorced and both married other people, they were able to be parents. ¡°Maybe it just happened to be during the safe period every time.¡± Serenity could only guess. Liberty wanted to say that it was not necessarily safe during the safe period. She still felt that it just was not time for them to have kids yet, so it was hard for Serenity to get pregnant. There definitely was no problem with Zachary¡¯s health. Her sister looked healthy too. And because she raised her sister, she was very familiar with her sister¡¯s state of health. If there was something even a little out of the ordinary, she would bring her sister to see the doctor at the first sign. Besides, it had not been long since the couple had really be husband and wife. It was very normal for Serenity to not be pregnant yet. Ding dong¡­ The doorbell rang. ¡°Who is it?¡± Liberty raised her voice and asked. Nowadays, when she heard the doorbell ring, she did not dare open it carelessly, afraid that the person at the door would be Jessica or her ex¨Chusband and their associates. Especially after finding out that Hank and Jessica had both lost their jobs, Liberty had a feeling that her ex¨Chusband would turn up to make a fuss again, thinking she was behind them losing their jobs. ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s me.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice filtered through. ¡°Zachary.¡± Liberty nced at her sister and seeing zero sign of surprise on her sister¡¯s countenance, she got up to open the door. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Zachary stood at the door, carrying a bag in one hand. That bag contained two tins of milk powder meant especially for pregnant women. Other than the two tins of milk powder, there were also calcium tablets and folic acid tablets. In any case, it was all meant for pregnant women. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m here to see Seren.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes curved into crescent moons and he could not stop himself from smiling. Liberty swept a nce over the things he had bought and seeing Zachary was about to make his way into the house, she said in a low voice, ¡°Zachary, it¡¯s a bit early for you to buy these things.¡± Zachary stared at his sister¨Cinw, stunned. The bodyguards said Serenity entered the drugstore to buy a few pregnancy tests earlier. Could it be that she was not pregnant? Or was it that the test could not detect that she was pregnant? ¡°Serenity isn¡¯t pregnant. She bought a few pregnancy tests but her period came when we got back.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. He got ahead of himself and got too happy too soon. Thinking he was going to be a father, he could not stop himself from going to a maternity goods shop to buy milk powder, calcium, and folic acid tablets for pregnantdies. Now, it turned out that Serenity was not pregnant. Then what should he do with the milk powder and folic acid tablets he had bought? Keep it for her to consume when she finally did get pregnant? Zachary was disappointed. He really wanted to have a child with Serenity. Liberty saw how disappointed her brother¨Cinw looked and consoled in a whisper,¡± It¡¯s fine. You guys are still young and haven¡¯t been together long. There¡¯s no need to rush to have a baby.¡± Zachary was silent for a moment before he said, ¡°I¡¯m alright, Liberty. Seren and I are still young anyway. There¡¯s no rush.¡± However, internally he thought that if his wife was not pregnant now and that she was staying with her sister for the time being, he did not know when they would be able to attempt making babies again. It seemed like it would be difficult for him to be a father this year. Guess he could only hope for the next year then. Besides, they had not held their wedding yet. There really was no rush to have a child. Zachary felt a lot better with that thought in mind. Chapter 945 Chapter 945 Chapter 945 R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°Come on in.¡± Liberty stood aside to let Zachary in. Zachary carried the things in. Seeing that his beloved wife was watching TV, he walked over and ced the bag on the coffee table as he sat down beside Serenity. ¡°Zachary, help yourself to whatever you want to eat or drink,¡± Liberty said and returned to her room. This allowed the husband and wife some alone time. ¡°What did you buy?¡± Serenity put down the remote and asked. Then she pulled the bag towards her and after opening it to take a look inside, she was struck speechless. Never mind that he had people watching her every move, but he had bought milk. powder for pregnant women beforehand for her to consume when her pregnancy was not even confirmed. Luckily, he had not sent a van full of supplements over. Maybe he had been in too much of a rush on his way over that he had not thought of buying a truckload of supplements for her. ¡°I can¡¯t take these for now. You should go and return them. They¡¯re returnable.¡± Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ve taken a look at the date of expiry. It¡¯s fine as long as you consume it within the time limit. There¡¯s no need to return it.¡± They would eventually have a child at some point. ¡°I didn¡¯t know what to buy either. When I went into the pharmacy and asked, the employee there rmended folic acid tablets, so I bought that and calcium. tablets. When I saw they sold this type of milk powder, I bought two tins.¡± Zachary honestly exined why he bought the two tins of milk powder. After seeing Serenity with her changed hairstyle, he felt that she was more beautiful than ever. His gaze toward her became gentler and deeper in love, but he did not say a single word of compliment. ¡°Do you feel difort?¡± Zachary remembered that she would get pains in her abdomen. ¡°For now, no. Tomorrow I probably will.¡± She often felt ufortable for the first two days of her period. She would either get abdominal pains or have backaches and she would bepletely irritable. After those two days, it would be fine. Zachary sat quietly for a while, then said, ¡°I¡¯ll make you some hot cocoa.¡± ¡°Okay, thanks.¡± Zachary, who was about to get up and walk away, could not help but say, ¡°Seren, we¡¯re husband and wife. Don¡¯t be so courteous with me.¡± A couple who interacted with each other so courteously was not in love. Serenity pursed her lips and remained silent. Zachary looked deeply at her for a long moment before getting up and going into the small kitchen to make her hot cocoa. Beep beep! Serenity received a new message. She took out her phone to look at it and it turned out to be from Jim. ¡°Missus, the boss hasn¡¯t eaten yet.¡± Serenity replied to Jim, ¡°Got it.¡± She put down her phone, got up, and entered the kitchen too. Due to the fact that the sisters constantly ate out, there was nothing much to eat in the kitchen. Serenity looked in the fridge and silently closed the fridge door. ¡°Seren, what are you looking for? What do you want to eat? Tell me and I¡¯ll make it for you.¡± ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I¡¯m just checking to see if there are still any groceries left in the fridge. If not, I¡¯ll have to go to the supermarket to buy some tomorrow morning.¡± Serenity said, then turned around and left the kitchen. Returning to the sofa, she picked up her phone and texted Jim, ¡°Jim, please buy some fast food for your boss and send it over here.¡± Jim very quickly replied, ¡°Missus, I¡¯ve bought the fast food and I¡¯ll send it up ASAP.¡± Serenity could not help but praise Jim in her heart for being quick¨Cwitted. Soon afterwards, the doorbell rang. Serenity got up to open the door and there Jim stood. Seeing her open the door, he respectfully said, ¡°Missus.¡± Chapter 946 Chapter 946 Chapter 946 Then he passed the fast food he had bought to Serenity and whispered, ¡°The boss has been working like madtely. He hasn¡¯t been eating properly. Whenever we send him food, he keeps forgetting to eat.¡± Serenity took the fast food, and said, ¡°Got it. I¡¯ll remind him.¡± Jim was extremely grateful. After closing the door, Serenity took a few deep breaths to suppress the heartache and anger she was feeling. When she walked into the kitchen, she saw Zachary pressing a hand against his stomach with his other hand supporting him against the kitchen counter, seemingly in a lot of pain. ¡°You¡¯re having a stomachache, aren¡¯t you?¡± An angry voice filled the room. He did not have to turn his head to know it was his esteemed wife. Zachary stood up straight in a sh, but the pain emanating from his stomach twisted his expression. Serenity felt her heart ache incredibly when she saw this and went forward to support him. She helped him out of the kitchen and pressed him down onto the sofa, asking, ¡°Does your stomach hurt?¡± ¡°Seren, I¨CI just need to bear with it for a bit and I¡¯ll be fine. I might just be hungry¡­ I¨C1 forgot to eat.¡± Facing his wrathful, beloved wife, Zachary felt extremely guilty. He did not starve himself on purpose. It was just that when he was focused on his work, he kept forgetting to pay attention to his body. It was not just the past few days. Since Valentine¡¯s Day, he had not eaten properly. Even if he remembered to eat, he did not enjoy it. The meal he had enjoyed the most recently was the lunch he had at the Stones¡® residence earlier. Serenity opened the bag of takeout Jim had brought. There was a bowl of soup and Serenity took that out first, letting Zachary first have some of that before the pasta. ¡°After dinner, I¡¯ll bring you to the hospital to get some medication prescribed.¡± The Yorks had a family doctor, but this man probably would not let the family doctor see him. ¡°There¡¯s no need to see a doctor. I¡¯ll be fine after I eat.¡± Recently, he often only realized he had not eaten after he got so hungry his stomach. hurt. ¡°Hurry up and eat!¡± Serenity coldly ordered. After he started eating, she entered the kitchen to turn the stove off. The hot cocoa he was preparing for her was done. Carrying the piping hot drink out from the kitchen, Serenity saw that Zachary was already done with his food. ¡°If you have gastric problems, you should eat slower. Don¡¯t eat too fast. Once I¡¯ve finished this, I¡¯m bringing you to the hospital.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren, there¡¯s no need to.¡± Serenity red at him and said coldly, ¡°I said we¡¯re going, so we¡¯re going!¡± Zachary snuck a nce at his wife¡¯s expression. He no longer dared say anything like he was not going to the hospital. ¡°I heard you¡¯ve been working like madtely.¡± Zachary answered carefully, ¡°I¡¯ve always been very busy. I¨CI¡¯m not deliberately using work to numb myself.¡± Serenity knew he was very busy. Back when they just registered their marriage, shel got homete and he got home eventer than she did. As the head of arge corporation, his schedule was packed to the brim every day. Every single minute was very valuable and cost a lot of money. Lately, possibly due to their rtionship, he worked even harder than normal. She thought about what he said before, that he would work hard to earn even more money. Afterwards, as long as she was willing to cooperate with him and go through the formalities, she could be the richest woman in Wiltspoon at any time. Serenity¡¯s heart ached. After the anger and resentment subsided, she found that her heart ached more for him. Serenity red at him in silence. Zachary was actually very nervous. He sped his hands together, ncing at his beloved wife¡¯s expression from time to time. Maybe because he was overly nervous, he felt that his stomachache this time did not recede after eating and continued to emit waves of pain. Serenity picked up her phone, went to get her car keys, then said with a still icy expression on her pretty face, ¡°I¡¯m bringing you to the hospital.¡± ¡°Seren, you still haven¡¯t finished your drink.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not in pain right now. The one in pain is you.¡± Serenity rebutted, but still drank her hot cocoa. Chapter 947 Chapter 947 Chapter 947 ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m sending Zachary back.¡± Serenity said toward the direction of her sister¡¯s room, not telling her that Zachary was feeling unwell and that she was sending him to the hospital. ¡°Alright, be careful on the road,¡± Liberty answered from her room, noting out. Internally she thought to herself with relief that at least they had made up a little. The troop of bodyguards waited downstairs and seeing that their boss wast apanied by the missus, they were surprised, but very quickly realized something was wrong as their boss seemed unwell. ¡°Boss.¡± Jim and the rest greeted them. ¡°Missus, what¡¯s wrong with the boss?¡± the bodyguards asked, concerned. Serenity unlocked her car and said to Zachary, ¡°Zachary, get in the car first.¡± ¡°Jim, can you support your boss? He¡¯s having gastric problems.¡± Jim made a sound of acknowledgment and hurriedly helped Zachary into the car. He could not help but continued to rat on his boss, ¡°The boss hasn¡¯t been eating his meals on timetely, which is why he has gastric problems now.¡± ¡°Jim!¡± Zachary red at Jim. Jim did not dare say another word. ¡°What are you ring at Jim for? Did you think you were made out of steel or that you were some god, so you didn¡¯t need to eat? Sit properly. I¡¯m about to start driving. Later, I¡¯m going to ask the doctor to give you a few jabs to help regte your health.¡± There was embarrassment on Zachary¡¯s handsome face as he was scolded by his wife, but in his heart, he felt pleased. He knew Serenity was still very much concerned about him. Although he really was not trying to y for sympathy. If Serenity could read his mind, she would probably retort, ¡°The man doth protest too much, methinks.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Zachary was silent. The security detail did not follow them to the hospital. With the missus around, they would just be a loud, gigantic third wheel if they followed them. The only one who could manage the boss was the missus alone. Even if the sky caved in, the missus would be able to hold it up. They were better off going home to shower and sleep¨Cdefinitely a good sleep that night. More than an hourter, they arrived back at Brynfield. Serenity said as she opened the door, ¡°You should lie down for a bit first. I¡¯ll go prepare your medication and once you¡¯ve taken it, you should rest.¡± Even without Serenity requesting it, the doctor prescribed Zachary three types of jabs. They were packaged neatly individually and organized ording to the time of day they needed to be administered. All Zachary had to do was swallow the pain. It saved a lot of effort. Of course, it was still not a fraction less painful than it normally was. Zachary was currently so obedient he seemed like Serenity¡¯s pet cat. With a hum of acknowledgment, he entered their home andy down on the sofa. Serenity ced the prescription on the coffee table and grabbed arge needle from their first aid kit. After cleaning it with an alcohol swab, she prepared the band¨Caid to adhere to the injection site post¨C injection. She sat down on the single¨Cseat sofa and took out the vials. There were about twenty of them in total. Zachary saw that she had taken out therge needle and could not help but shrink. backward. She was doing it on purpose. She knew he was most afraid of needles but still took such arge needle to inject his medication with. However, he did not dare say a word. Serenity was furious. Right now, if he could not say anything, then he would not say anything, lest he angered the tigress further and she gave him a good scolding. Minutester. Chapter 948 Chapter 948 Chapter 948 Therge needle that preordained great pain danced in front of Zachary¡¯s face. ¡°Come here so I can give you your injection,¡± Serenity ordered with a stern face. A certain Mr. York sat up with a doleful expression. Looking at therge needle, he swallowed and asked tentatively, ¡°Seren, can you prepare some painkillers for after?¡± ¡°What do you think?¡± Zachary did not dare speak more with his esteemed wife ring at him. Picking up therge needle and thinking of the pain, he felt terrified.. ¡°Seren, it¡¯s too early. I¡¯ll do it a bitter, okay?¡± ¡°It¡¯s up to you.¡± Serenity sat down in the armchair and leaned back. Then she dug out her phone and sent a voice note to her sister. ¡°Liberty, make sure totch the door from the inside. I¡¯m not going back tonight.¡± Hearing that, Zachary¡¯s expression brightened. The corners of his lips could not resist rising upwards. Although his stomach hurt a lot and he still had to take painful injections with arge needle, the whole ordeal managed to make Serenity stay overnight. Out of the corner of her eye, she caught Zachary¡¯s cheerful expression. She looked around and finally picked up a pillow to throw at him, scolding him, ¡°Zachary, just you try starving yourself again in the future! Do you think I¡¯ll care? ¡°I won¡¯t care! I won¡¯t care a single bit! I¡¯ll rejoice in your excruciating pain and it¡¯ll be great! You¡¯re in your thirties and still don¡¯t know how to take care of yourself. What is a mouth for? It¡¯s for eating!¡± Even when she was at her angriest and saddest, she would never skip a meal. Zachary caught the pillow she threw. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll pay attention in the future. I won¡¯t make you worry again.¡± ¡°Who¡¯s worried?! I¡¯m not worried at all! You think you¡¯re all that?!¡± ¡°Alright, alright. I think I¡¯m all that. I¡¯ll get them to give me all of this so I can think I¡¯m all that.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary got up and walked to his wife¡¯s side. He then forcibly squeezed into the armchair with her and Serenity even shoved him twice in anger, but did not manage to push him away. He firmly upied most of the armchair. It was such a tight squeeze she wanted to get up and walk away, but he put his arms around her waist, and with a show of strength, she stumbled and fell into hisp. He hugged her closely, rested his chin on her shoulder, and said softly, ¡°Seren, please forgive me? ¡°The days I couldn¡¯te looking for you were too hard for me. I was like a zombie.¡± Even if he could find out about her movements at any moment, he still missed her like crazy. ¡°I won¡¯t lie to you again in the future. If I do, I¡¯ll take whatever you throw at me.¡± Serenity tried to pry his hands away but after failing to do so, pinched the back of his hand with force a few times. Her expression was stiff as she said, ¡°I never said you couldn¡¯te to look for me.¡± ¡°Nana didn¡¯t let me.¡± Zachary added pitifully, ¡°I got drunk one night, and do you know how Nana woke me up?¡± ¡°She poured a bucket of cold water over your head.¡± ¡°Nana got someone to move a deck chair next to the swimming pool andid the drunk me on the chair. Then, when I identally rolled over, I fell into the pool. I really was shocked awake within seconds- also from how cold it was.¡± Serenity was struck speechless. Only Nana could do such a thing. ¡°After I sobered up, Nana didn¡¯t let me go and look for you and said to let you calm down. Only God knew how hard it was for me to go days without seeing you, sol could only throw myself into my work. Only when I was busy would I not miss you¡­ I really wasn¡¯t trying to make you pity me. ¡°I made you lose trust in me and I really regret that. I just want to use actual deeds to help you regain trust in me again. I absolutely won¡¯t even think of trying to deceive you again. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ve thought it through. You can do whatever you want to do and I¡¯ll support you no matter what. If you can¡¯t fit into my circle, you don¡¯t have to force yourself. I¡¯ll amodate you instead. It¡¯s much easier than you amodating me. ¡°I think living our own lives simply is pretty good.¡± Serenity turned to look at him. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Their gazes met. In the next moment, Serenity grabbed Zachary¡¯s face and viciously bit him on the lip, proceeding to bite him on each cheek too. Chapter 949 Chapter 949 Chapter 949 After the three vicious bites, Serenity took advantage of the time he was in pain to forcefully break out of his embrace and got up to bring over the vial of medicine to administer the injection. She handed it to him, her pretty face threatening, ¡°Take it!¡± Zachary¡¯s face and lips had been bitten by her and he was now in pain, but he still had to take the vial of medicine. He epted the vial as his dark eyes looked at her. ¡°Don¡¯t pretend to be so pitiful. I won¡¯t give in.¡± Zachary chuckled. She was prickly on the outside but a softie on the inside. He looked at her as he took the jab. It was very painful, but with her watching him, he felt that it was not painful at all anymore and even felt good. Very quickly, Zacharypleted the jab. Once he was done, Serenity took the emptied syringe from him and took it into the kitchen to dispose of properly. The moment his wife left, Zachary immediately started searching everywhere for something in the living area. It was so painful! He wanted to have some painkillers to ease the pain. ¡°What are you looking for?¡± Serenity came out and asked when she saw him. searching for something. Zachary quickly took off his wedding ring and ced it under the coffee table, replying, ¡°I dropped my wedding ring, so I¡¯m looking for it. ¡°I found it! It was under the coffee table.¡± He picked up the ring and stood straight, putting his ring back onto his ring finger matter¨Cof¨Cfactly. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity did not say anything and he could not tell if she bought the act. ¡°Go to sleep early,¡± Serenity said and returned to her room. Zachary made a sound in acknowledgment and once she entered her room and closed the door, he crept into the kitchen like a thief. He could not find any ibuprofen but there was some cough syrup. He took a small spoon, opened the bottle, and poured a little cough syrup onto the spoon and then in his mouth it went. The rush of relief chased away the pain. Why were needles so painful?! He really hated needles. That doctor was so mean¨Cdid not even ask what he felt and immediately prescribed injections. Zachary felt a little better after having some cough syrup. After washing the spoon and putting it back where it belonged, he turned to walk out of the kitchen. When he did, he saw his esteemed wife leaning against the doorway to the kitchen, her hands stuffed in her pockets as she just looked at him. Zachary was stunned for a moment but said honestly, ¡°The injection¡® was too painful, so I had some cough syrup for pain relief.¡± ¡°The vials aren¡¯t enough. Once you¡¯re done, I¡¯ll get the doctor to prescribe you a few more and let you take them for a while longer to help your stomach recover.¡± Zachary was silent. After Serenity finished saying that, she took her hands out of her pockets and turned to leave. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary followed her. ¡°Seren, the stomach recovers based on what I eat. As long as I have three proper meals a day and eat foods that are gentle on the stomach, I can slowly recover even if I don¡¯t take medication for it.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have the time to help you recover like that.¡± ¡°Yes, yes. My wife is very busy.¡± ¡°What are you following me for?¡± ¡°Your room is my room too. I¡¯ll sleep wherever you sleep.¡± Zachary expressed his rogue side to the fullest and after closing the door, he forcibly embraced Serenity and lowered his head, seeking her lips to first obtain the benefits he as her husband was entitled to. It was a shame that she was having her period and they could not make babies. Though it was enough to spend the night with her in her room. No matter how dark Serenity¡¯s expression got, Zachary refused to leave her room. If she got mad, he would clutch his stomach and cry, ¡°It hurts! It hurts so badly!¡± Then, his esteemed wife would no longer try to chase him out, which allowed him to sessfully stay by her side and go to sleep with her in his arms. Serenity did not say she forgave Zachary, but her every word and action revealed that she was no longer angry. The next day, when Zachary woke up, Serenity had already made breakfast for him. His was pumpkin oat porridge. Chapter 950 Chapter 950 Chapter 950 She had deliberately prepared many kinds of food for her own breakfast to make him drool. ¡°I¡¯m going to dinner tonight with my aunt, so I won¡¯t be eating with you. If you¡¯re not going to the hotel to eat, I¡¯ve prepared dinner in the shop. You can get Jim to go over and pick it up,¡± Serenity said to the man sitting opposite her as she ate her bountiful and nutritious meal. ¡°Want me to go with you? Which family is hosting the dinner you guys are attending?¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have to. Aunt Audrey is bringing Elisa and I. Which family? I¡¯ve forgotten. There were too many invitations¨CI can¡¯t remember them all.¡± Zachary said regretfully, ¡°I don¡¯t have to worry if your aunt and cousin will be with you. Then I¡¯ll work overtime. Just get Jim to send the food over to me.¡± His wife was willing to cook for him now¨Cno way he was going to eat at the hotel. ¡°You can work overtime, but not toote. I¡¯ll be back before 11 pm. If I don¡¯t see you at home when I get back, I¡¯m locking the door. You can spend the night outside the door then¨CI won¡¯t open it for you,¡± Serenity said mercilessly. Zachary could not help butugh. ¡°I promise I¡¯ll be home waiting for my Seren to get home.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Who is yours? You¡¯re so shameless.¡± ¡°I¡¯m yours. My shame and pride have been thrown into the corner.¡± Serenity red at him. ¡°Hurry up and eat your porridge. There¡¯s another bowl of it left in the pot. Once you¡¯re done with this one, you can scoop the next one yourself. My breakfast is too yummy¨CI hope you drool to death.¡± Zachary chuckled. He was not drooling even a little bit. After eating and drinking her fill, Serenity got ready to leave. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary hurriedly called for her. Serenity turned to look at him and he said with warmth, ¡°Drive carefully on the road.¡± ¡°I always remember that I drive a car, not a ne.¡± Zachary smiled with a delicate warmth in his eyes. Last night, she drove really. quickly. She was worried for him. Serenity left first. Zachary had not finished eating his porridge. He was not in a rush and was slowly eating it. The door suddenly opened again. Serenity had turned back and said, ¡°I have to watch you take the jab before I go to the shop.¡± Zachary was speechless. He thought he could sessfully avoid taking it, now that his stomach was not hurting anymore. After watching him take the jab, Serenity left once again but bumped into Nana downstairs, who was dragging boxes with her. ¡°Nana,¡± Serenity greeted Nana with surprise. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ve been chased out of home again, so I¡¯m moving here to stay with you for a. while.¡± Nana¡¯s excuse had been used so many times before but she was still using it. She was old anyway and did not have any shame to speak of, neither was she afraid of being made fun of. Serenityughed helplessly. ¡°Nana, if you want to stay with us, you should just give your precious grandson a heads up and he¡¯ll arrange for someone to pick you up anytime. You don¡¯t have to use such a bad excuse.¡± The old woman was the most venerated existence in the family. Who would dare chase her out? She was so innocent in the past to really believe Nana had argued with her son and daughter¨Cinw and because of that, wanted to stay with her grandson. ¡°There¡¯s no use telling him. I have to tell you¨Che did say that at home, what you say goes. Seren, you don¡¯t hate Nana, do you?¡± ¡°Nana, I¡¯d be ecstatic for you toe and stay with us. Why would I hate you? Who dropped you off?¡± Nana answered, ¡°I got an Uber to avoid getting stopped by your grandfather and the rest on the way here. I¡¯ve lived to this age but it¡¯s my first time meeting someone who¡¯s more shameless than I am.¡± Serenity¡¯s expression darkened and her gaze turned icy. ¡°They¡¯ve disturbed you?¡± Chapter 951 Chapter 951 Chapter 951 Grandma May said, ¡°They don¡¯t know what car I use, but they stopped your mother¨Cin-w once, as well as your second aunt¨Cinw.¡± Seeing Serenity¡¯s dark expression, she quicklyforted her. ¡°We all know what kind of people they are. They¡¯re asking for a bride price now, but their true intention is to disgust us with you so you¡¯d have a bad time in our family. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°We can still see through those little ns of theirs. Don¡¯t worry, Seren. We didn¡¯t let them get any benefits. When they intercepted your mother¨Cinw¡¯s car, she called the police directly and said someone was blocking the road and trying to rob her.¡± ¡°That granddad of yours is really shameless. Hey on the ground saying that he was hit, but he didn¡¯t expect the road to be monitored by surveince. The police came and checked the surveince, then found out that hey on the ground himself. They criticized him and lectured him, then ordered his children and grandchildren to take him away. ¡°The most hateful thing was that they brought reporters to dress as their aplices and secretly took videos, but they were also exposed. The videos they took were deleted, but news about this would get out either way. You don¡¯t have to worry about it. ¡°Everyone in Wiltspoon knows what kind of people they are and how they¡¯ve treated you and your sister. I¡¯m telling you this because I don¡¯t think they¡¯ll give up even after being reprimanded by the police. They mighte up with some plot against you. and your sister, but mostly against you.¡± That was because Serenity was now the eldest missus of the York family. Her rtives were trying their best now to break up Serenity and Zachary so she could not stay in the York family. They wanted Serenity to have an unhappy life in her husband¡¯s home. They were punished by Zachary and lost their jobs and businesses. Now, the whole family was surviving purely on their savings. They could not go up against Zachary, so they aimed all their troubles at Serenity. Even if Serenity was the missus of the York family, it could not erase their rtionship as rtives. No matter how amazing Zachary was, he could not eliminate arge family of dozens. As long as Zachary could not kill them, they were fearless and would seize any opportunity to pester and annoy Serenity. Threats and warnings were useless against those people. Even if the cops were called, they did not exactly do anything illegal, so the police could only issue them a warning at most. It was said that it was better to offend a gentleman than a viin. The people from her hometown were a bunch of viins. They were shameless and insidious. Serenity said coldly, ¡°I¡¯m not afraid, Nana. If they dare appear in front of me, I¡¯ll chase them away with a broom. We¡¯ve driven them away so many times, so they went to you to cause trouble because they know they won¡¯t get any benefits from me.¡± If they thought the York family would give them money because they could not stand. the annoyance, they could continue dreaming! ¡°Nana, Zachary is still at home. I¡¯ll see you off at the stairs, and then you can go upstairs yourself. I¡¯m going to the store.¡± ¡°No need for that. You can just go to work. It¡¯s not like I don¡¯t know the way. I¡¯ll go upstairs by myself.¡± Grandma May refused Serenity¡¯s offer to send her to the block. Serenity still helped the old woman to pull her suitcase, then called Zachary and told him that his nana was here. She only left when she saw Jim and the others. She remembered the first time she saw Jim and the other bodyguards. She had thought that they lived nearby¡­ After leaving Brynfield, Serenity noticed that someone was secretly following her. She remained calm. With her familiarity with the surroundings, she did not take the open roads and instead picked small alleyways, taking left and right turns until she lost the person following her. She thought it was the paparazzi. Although her identity as the eldest missus of the York family was exposed, she was not disturbed by the media. She knew in her heart that it was thanks to Zachary. No one darede up to her openly because he did not allow the media to disturb her. However, it was hard to prevent the paparazzi from following her and secretly taking pictures of her. Everyone in Wiltspoon knew she was Mrs. York now, but how did Zachary and her rtionship start, and how did they get along in their everyday lives? That was something many people wanted to know. If they could sneak some photos of her and Zachary¡¯s private life, they could satisfy the curiosity of the people. When she got back to Wiltspoon School, Jasmine had already opened up the shop. Mrs. Lane was there too. Chapter 952 Chapter 952 Chapter 952 Since Serenity and Zachary lived separately, Mrs. Lane went back to Brynfield daily to clean up and water the flowers on the balcony. She was no longer staying there and instead went back to the manor, the ce she originally lived. Sam, the housekeeper who had returned from his leave, gave Mrs. Lane a car for her convenience. ¡°Missus.¡± Mrs. Lane had just finished mopping the floor when she saw Serenitying. She greeted thetter respectfully. ¡°You can just call me Ms. Hunt like before, Mrs. Lane. Don¡¯t call me Missus. It sounds weird to me.¡± She did not put on airs in front of Mrs. Lane. Mrs. Lane did not think it was appropriate and said, ¡°Mr. Zachary will deduct my bonus if he finds out. ¡°You¡¯ll get used to it after hearing it more on a daily basis.¡± Serenity was speechless. All Zachary knew was how to threaten people. She entered the store. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine saw her enter and checked her out from top to bottom. ¡°What? Don¡¯t you recognize me?¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°You look good today. You look to be in good spirits, and your mood seems pleasant. Did something happen?¡± ¡°Yep, I met a hot stud by coincidence. He¡¯s way more handsome than Zachary.¡± Jasmine smiled cheekily. ¡°There¡¯s no way that¡¯s possible. There¡¯s no man in Wiltspoon who¡¯s better looking than your husband. Even Josh isn¡¯t as attractive as he is.¡± Josh was a busybody. That was one of his ws. However, Jasmine liked that he was a busybody. She was one herself. When the two got together, they could talk about anyone. ¡°Did you make up with Mr. York? It¡¯s been so long, and I notice your anger has subsided. Since you¡¯re not angry anymore, just make up with him. Josh looks like he¡¯s going to die from his headaches. He said that Mr. York torments everyone in thepany till they¡¯re about to burst into tears.¡± Serenity said indifferently, ¡°He tortures himself and others as well.¡± Case in point¨Chis gastritis. She just sent him to the hospital to see a doctorst night. Serenity did not tell her best friend about that. ¡°By the way, when is Liberty¡¯s store opening for business? I told my family in the group chat to go to her store to support her business on her opening day.¡± Serenity was incredibly grateful. Her best friend was really impressive. She was fortunate to have Jasmine as her best friend in her life. ¡°She¡¯s opening next Monday. Her main demographic is the workers in that area, so she chose Monday. People get tired of ying over the weekends and won¡¯t feel like cooking breakfasts at the start of the week, so they¡¯ll choose to eat out.¡± Jasmine took note of the time of Liberty¡¯s breakfast store opening. ¡°I¡¯ll be going over to help on that day.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Of course. Do you need my help too?¡± Chapter 953 Chapter 953 Chapter 953 Serenity smiled. ¡°Mrs. Lane and I should be enough.¡± The store her sister rented was notrge. If too many people went to help, it would look crowded with the customersing in to have breakfast. While the two friends chatted, two¨Cno, three people walked in One of them was Noah, Serenity¡¯s youngest cousin. He tried stopping Serenity¡¯s car in the middle of the nightst year and wanted to teach her a lesson, but she sent him to the police station. He was released after fifteen days of detention, but he did not repent and instead hated Serenity with a passion. He dropped out of school and stopped studying. His parents spoiled him and felt that his grades were not good enough to get him epted into a university anyway, so they let him do as he pleased. After dropping out of school, Noah did nothing except y games. He came along thest time his grandfather visited the store to cause trouble, but Serenity did not notice him because there were too many people. ¡°Let me go! I said let me go!¡± Noah struggled against the two burly men who dragged him inside. Serenity had never seen the two men before, but she could guess that they were people Zachary had arranged to secretly keep an eye on¨CAhem, to secretly protect All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. her. The two bodyguards dragged Noah in and pushed him, and Noah fell to the ground. He quickly got up and hurriedly hid behind Serenity. ¡°Serenity, help me!¡± Serenity ripped her punk cousin from behind her and asked with a cold face, ¡°What did you do?¡± ¡°Missus, this kid has been following you and kept taking pictures of you. When he lost your trail, he came straight here and tried to sh your car tires when he saw no one around. We managed to stop him before he did.¡± At those words, Serenity pped Noah¡¯s arm, causing him to jump. He wanted to cuss at her, but when he saw her frosty face, he remembered how formidable she was when she beat him up thest time. He was full of anger, but he did not dare vent it at Serenity. He could only rub the ce where she pped while looking at her cautiously. ¡°I thought it was the paparazzi, but it was just you. Why are you following me? Did he use a cell phone or a camera to take the photos?¡± The second question was directed at the bodyguards. One of them answered, ¡°He took them using his phone.¡± He handed Serenity a cell phone along with a small knife. ¡°This is his phone, and this is the knife he tried to sh your tires with.¡± Serenity took the phone and knife, then stared coldly at Noah. The boy shrunk and said defensively, ¡°I¨C I just took a few photos, and I didn¡¯t sh your tires. Why are you looking at me like that? It¡¯s like you¡¯re going to eat me up.¡± Serenity did not rush to ask him why he was following her and taking pictures of her. he first took the knife out. Noah must have followed her in a car. She wondered if he used his own car or if he borrowed his cousin¡¯s car. Although it was a new year and Noah was eighteen this year, his birthday had not passed yet, so he was still considered a minor. In other words, he was driving without a license. He really had guts! He was spoiled by his family and did not know fear. Driving without a license was nothing for him. Noah quickly reacted. He immediately chased after Serenity while yelling, ¡°Serenity. Seren, Seren! Don¡¯t sh my tires. I borrowed this car from John. He said he¡¯ll never let me touch his car again if I damage it.¡± John¡¯s car was a luxury ride. Everyone wanted Noah to follow Serenity, so he took the opportunity to ask John to lend him his luxury car. Otherwise, he would not have agreed to do something like this which would only end up in him being beaten up by Serenity. None of them had ever fought with Serenity, so they did not know how good she was at fighting. Noah was aware too that everyone pushed him to this job because he was not a legal adult yet. Chapter 954 Chapter 954 Chapter 954 Serenity did not know which car Noah used at first, but since he volunteered the information, she managed to find John¡¯s car. After all, out of all of the cousins, John¡¯s car was the best. Serenity walked over, raised the knife, and shed all four tires of John¡¯s car. The tires were punctured and deted. Soon, all four tires were t. ¡°Oh no, oh no.¡± Noah looked at the t tires and seemed frightened. ¡°I don¡¯t have enough money to get new tires for him. Serenity!¡± He shouted at her, ¡°You need to pay for it!¡± Serenity looked at him coldly. he walked over while ying with the knife. Noah¡¯s yelling became quiet. Standing in front of him, Serenity patted his face with the knife. Noah was so scared that he did not dare breathe. His eyes were filled with fear. He was terrified that this damned woman would sh his face and disfigure him. He did not have a wife yet. ¡°Whose idea was this?¡± ¡°W¨CWhat idea?¡± ¡°Following me, taking pictures of me, and shing my tires. Whose idea was it? What¡¯s their purpose?¡± Did they want to sell her photos to the media for money? Serenity did not think it was that simple. ¡°I¨CI just did it because I wanted to get back at you. I don¡¯t have any other purpose.¡± Noah did not dare reveal that his cousins were plotting something. Everyone thought that their current predicament was caused by Serenity and her husband. They pestered the Yorks countless times but did not get money. Old Mr. Hunt 2/2 scolded Scott, who had been dead for many years, for giving birth to two unfilial girls. Serenity was rich and powerful, but she did not even bother helping her family. Instead, she caused her cousins to lose their jobs. Old Mr. Hunt also scolded Serenity for not helping her female cousins out and letting them marry into a rich family after she married into one herself. He said that if any other granddaughter of his married into the York family, he would be inws with the York family and be their esteemed guest. Just by thinking about it, everyone felt dignified and proud. Then, John thought of a deadly n. He said that Harriet, John¡¯s younger sister, was close to Serenity in age. Harriet took after her father, Chris, and it was said that Chris and Scott looked somewhat simr, and Serenity mostly took after her father too. Thus, Harriet and Serenity also looked somewhat simr. John proposed to have Harriet change her face into Serenity¡¯s, then kidnap Serenity and send her into a deep forest so she could nevere back. Then, Harriet could rece Serenity to be the eldest missus of the York family. The eldest missus of the York family would then be one of their own. John felt that his sister would definitely side with her maiden family. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. His n was approved by everyone. Noah looked at Serenity and thought in his heart, ¡®John overlooked one thing. Although Harriet resembled Serenity, even if she undergoes stic surgery to have Serenity¡¯s face and imitate Serenity¡¯s way of doing things, Serenity knows kickboxing, whereas Harriet has been spoiled since birth. She can¡¯t even lift a bucket of water, let alone fight. ¡®Will John¡¯s n really work?¡¯ Harriet had already gone for cosmetic surgery. Noah had not seen what she looked like after the surgery, so he did not know if she really had Serenity¡¯s face now. Chapter 955 Chapter 955 Chapter 955 ¡°Noah Hunt, you know me, right? If you don¡¯t talk, I¡¯ll sh a few lines across your face. You¡¯re already ugly enough with pimples all over your face. It¡¯ll be horrid if I add some de scars to that. You¡¯ll never get a wife and have to stay single all your life.¡± Noah visibly nched and stammered, ¡°I¨CI can¡¯t say¡­¡± With just that, Serenity knew that her rtives were nning something big to deal with her. She said to the two bodyguards, ¡°Bring him in for me. I¡¯ll take good care of my little cousin.¡± ¡°W¨CWait, I¡¯ll go by myself. Don¡¯t let them touch me. They¡¯re too rough.¡± Noah jumped and followed Serenity into the store. He knew how to behave himself after falling into Serenity¡¯s hands. She would beat him into a pulp if she did not get what she wanted. Back in the store, he moved a stool for Serenity and poured water for her to drink. ¡°Talk. Why did they ask you to follow me? It¡¯s fine if you don¡¯t tell me. You know my identity now. As long as I give themand, I¡¯ll soon be able to find out your n. ¡°But if you tell me, I¡¯ll give you money to take a cab home.¡± Noah was speechless. Did he need her to pay for his cab fare? ¡°Are you going to talk or not?¡± Serenity¡¯s hands clenched into fists. It was clear what she meant. ¡°Don¡¯t you dare¡­ I¨CI¡¯ll talk. Let¡¯s talk nicely, okay? They told me to follow you and secretly take pictures of you to show to Harriet so she can imitate your words and actions.¡± Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes shed. Jasmine and Mrs. Lane exchanged nces. The people present here were not fools. With Noah¡¯s words, they all guessed what the Hunt family was nning. ¡°And¡± Coronity asked indifferently Noah refused to say more and insisted that that was all he knew. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°I¡¯m the youngest, so they never rope me in when they discuss their ns. They only tell me a small bit when they want to use me. I really don¡¯t know anything else.¡± Serenity did not force him to talk. She handed his phone to him. Noah thought that she was going to return his phone and hastily took it. Just as he was about to thank her, she said, ¡°Delete all the photos you took!¡± Noah was speechless. ¡°Make sure you delete all of them. If you don¡¯t, I¡¯ll smash your phone, take out your phone card and throw it into therge river up ahead.¡± Noah quickly said, ¡°I¡¯ll delete them. I¡¯ll delete everything.¡± He was really unlucky. He was discovered the first time he was sent out to do detective work. Noah cussed Serenity out in his heart. He always made a misstep every time he targeted her. Under Serenity¡¯s watchful eyes, he unlocked the phone and handed it back to her. He did not dare say anything and watched as she deleted all of the photos he took. She even opened up his WhatsApp to check his chat with John and the others. They talked about how to retaliate against her, but Noah had not sent any photos. He must not have had time to send them after secretly taking the photos. After making sure that all the photos were deleted, Serenity returned the phone to him and warned him, ¡°If this happens again, I¡¯ll hand you over to Mr. York to deal with. His methods are much more ruthless than mine. ¡°He won¡¯t kill you, but he can make your life a living hell.¡± Noah¡¯s face went as white as a sheet. Serenity was already terrifying, let alone Mr. York. ¡°I swear, I won¡¯t do such things anymore. I won¡¯t do it no matter what benefits they give me.¡± Noah fell into Serenity¡¯s hands twice without getting any benefits. He hated Serenity, but he could not get rid of her. He really was unlucky. It would turn out better if he was sent to stalk and take pictures of Liberty instead. Chapter 956 Chapter 956 Chapter 956 However, Liberty was not as valuable as Serenity in the eyes of Old Mr. Hunt and the others. One was a pitiful woman who divorced and lived alone with a child, whereas the other was the eldest missus of the York family, the richest family in the city. Even a three¨Cyear¨Cold would know who was more valuable. ¡°Get out!¡± Noah stammered, ¡°My fare¡­¡± As soon as Serenity red, Noah scampered out. She went back on her word! She tricked him! How could he have a cousin like Serenity? Noah scolded Serenity all the way back to John¡¯s rented house. As for John¡¯s luxury car, he could not drive it back because all four tires were shed. He could only let John think of a way himself. Fortunately, he brought back the car keys. When John found out that his little cousin not only failed and was discovered, but also left his car in front of Serenity¡¯s shop, he was furious. He kicked Noah and yelled, ¡°Even if you got scared and ran away, you should have run away with the car! How could you juste back with the car keys without the car?!¡± ¡°I¨CI couldn¡¯t drive it back, John.¡± Noah was kicked and did not dare fight back. He said timidly, ¡°Your tires were shed by Serenity. I wanted to stop her, but she was too quick. I couldn¡¯t stop her¡­¡± John looked like he was in pain. ¡°She shed my tires? How many?¡± Noah raised four fingers. ¡°It cost so much money to change just one tire, but she shed all four of them?!¡± John was furious! ¡°Noah, you didn¡¯t tell her our n, did you?¡± John quickly asked his younger cousin Chapter 956 when he was reminded of their n. Noah said, ¡°I didn¡¯t.¡± 2/2 He indeed did not explicitly tell her everyone¡¯s n. He just told her his purpose of secretly taking pictures of her. John breathed a sigh of relief and said, ¡°Only we need to know about that n. Don¡¯t tell anyone about it. If Serenity and her husband find out, they¡¯ll be on the lookout, and it¡¯ll be impossible to implement the n.¡± Noah nodded repeatedly. ¡°I know that, John. Don¡¯t worry, I didn¡¯t tell her.¡± He really did not tell Serenity. ¡°What about my car?¡± John¡¯s heart broke for his car. He had to spend a lot of money recing all four tires. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. If it were in the past, he would not care about that amount of money. Now that he had lost his job that paid a million a year, although his life was not that affected since he had savings, he was more frugal now than before. He did not want to spend money before he found a new job. Furthermore, the money his family spent also came out of his pocket. He was supporting his wife, but also his parents. Furthermore, his wife just got pregnant. He sent his wife back to her maiden home during her pregnancy so that these vexing matters did not affect her mood. That was the reason Serenity had not seen her. ¡°Serenity Hunt!¡± John said viciously, ¡°Just you wait. One day, we¡¯ll make you cry!¡± As long as their n seeded, Serenity would be left with nothing! She would starve to death in the deep woods. Then, his own sister would rece Serenity as the eldest missus of the York family¡­ What a beautiful thought! Chapter 957 Chapter 957 Chapter 957 After Noah ran away, Jasmine said to her friend, ¡°Seren, those guys might be trying to rece you.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not that they ¡®might¡® but rather they¡¯re already nning it.¡± Serenity sat down behind the cash register looking slightly exhausted. Her sister and she were really unlucky to have been born into that family. To think they were rted by blood! ¡°Is that Harriet whom Noah mentioned older or younger than you?¡± ¡°We¡¯re the same age. I¡¯m a week older than her.¡± Serenity thought about her cousin who was only one week younger than her. She had not seen Harriet for more than ten years and had little memory of her. Did Harriet and her look simr? When her parents were alive, she and Harriet went to school together and were in the same ss. She seemed to remember her ssmates mentioning that they looked alike. Even if they did, they would only look somewhat simr. Did Harriet think she could rece Serenity by just impersonation? Did they think Zachary was stupid? Unless¡­ Harriet went to get stic surgery to change her face. ¡°Harriet Hunt¡­¡± Serenity said, ¡°I¡¯ll go to York Corporation at noon. This matter has to be handled by Zachary, Harriet might have gone for cosmetic surgery now.¡± Even if Zachary would not fall for it, Serenity did not want Harriet to have her face. She had no ability to stop Harriet from undergoing cosmetic surgery, so she could only leave it to Zachary to deal with. Now, the husband and wife were targets of the Hunt family, so they should work together to deal with them. ¡°They¡¯re horrible. How can they think of such a vicious n?¡± They dared use Harriet to impersonate Serenity and rece her as the eldest missus All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. of the York family. It was the same as trying to kill Serenity. ¡°I¡¯m not surprised they came up with this n. Ever since my granddad brought them over to cause trouble and demand money, I knew they wouldn¡¯t stop at that. Even if I gave them money, they wouldn¡¯t be satisfied. They would want more.¡± Besides, she would never give them money. Thus, they thought of another way to get benefits. ¡°Mr. Zachary won¡¯t fall for it,¡± Mrs. Lane said confidently. There was a saying that went ¡°you may know a person¡¯s face, but it¡¯s difficult to know their heart¡°. Even if Harriet looked like Serenity, she would be exposed. Serenity¡¯s words and actions were not something that could be learned in a day or two. Furthermore, Serenity knew kickboxing. Zachary just had to test her to know if she was fake or not. ¡°Whether or not he¡¯ll fall for it, this n has to be stopped. I don¡¯t want to see another woman with the exact same face as mine, let alone that woman being my own cousin.¡± It was disgusting to say the least. Currently, Zachary did not know that the Hunt family was nning something this horrid. The man stubbornlyy on Serenity¡¯s bed and slept the whole night. In the morning, he ate the food his wife personally prepared for him to nourish his stomach. Although he was forced to get another jab, his heart felt sweet. He did not get angry even when he saw his grandmother move in again and be a third wheel. Grandma May followed him back to the office. Howeyer, she did not disturb Zachary¡¯s work. She wandered around thepany when she arrived. She was inly dressed, but fortunately, everyone recognized her. Otherwise, they would have taken her for a janitor. She turned around and went to Callum¡¯s office. She pushed the door and entered before the secretary could knock on the door. When Callum looked up and saw his nana, he immediately put down his pen, got up to walk around his desk, and greeted the old woman. ¡°Nana, what wind blows you here today?¡± Chapter 958 Chapter 958 Chapter 958 ¡°There¡¯s always wind blowing from any direction.¡± Grandma May pped away Callum¡¯s hand that wanted to support her. ¡°No need for that. I¡¯m still hale and hearty. I won¡¯t die until I see all of you marry and have children.¡± ¡°Then I won¡¯t marry and have children. I¡¯ll let you live until you¡¯re two hundred years old, Nana.¡± Grandma May whacked Callum. ¡°You little brat. I followed your big brother back to the office today to talk about your marriage.¡± Callum was speechless. Was it toote for him to escape now? Of course, it was. He hurriedly helped his nana to the couch for a seat, then knelt in front of her and helped to massage her legs. He asked a little curiously yet nervously, ¡°Who do you have your eye on, Nana? Is it someone I know?¡± He was aware that his nana had recently set her target on him. It was because he was the second born. Since the eldest got married, it was his turn now. ¡°Nana, I¡¯ll say this first. I¡¯m not interested in getting married out of nowhere. Don¡¯t lie on the ground again and let someone ¡®save¡® you, then force me to marry that person in order to help you repay her.¡± Grandma May grinned and said, ¡°I used that method for Zachary, so I won¡¯t use it again for you. Don¡¯t worry.¡± ¡°So, who is she?¡± ¡°Curious?¡± ¡°Of course I am. It¡¯s you who helped me pick. I want to know which woman managed to catch my nana¡¯s eye.¡± To be honest, even now, he did not understand why his grandmother chose Serenity to be their eldest sister¨Cinw. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Thus, he took the opportunity to ask. Grandma May said, ¡°I really was ufortable at that time and was saved by Serenity. Don¡¯t make it sound like I was running an insurance fraud scam. I also really like Serenity, but the reason I insisted Zack marry her was because of a fortune teller. He divined that Serenity and Zack were meant to be husband and wife.¡± Callum was speechless, but went on to ask, ¡°Nana, where did that fortune teller ¡°All fortune tellers can divine if a couple is meant for marriage.¡± Grandma May did not expose the fortune teller¡¯s identity. ¡°Pour me a ss of water.¡± ¡°Sure thing.¡± Callum quickly poured her a cup of warm water. The olddy took two sips, then slowly took out two photos and handed them to Callum, saying, ¡°Pick one of the two as your target. I¡¯ll give you one year. Achieve the goal within one year.¡± ¡°What if we don¡¯t end up together after one year?¡± ¡°Then you can get lost! You cane back when you finish the goal.¡± Callum was speechless. ¡°Nana, you¡¯re so cruel. We¡¯re your grandsons.¡± ¡°Grandsons are worthless.¡± ¡°I can have a sex change operation and be your granddaughter instead.¡± ¡°Be my guest, but even if you do that, you still won¡¯t be a granddaughter in my eyes.¡± Callum chuckled. ¡°I¡¯m just joking, Nana.¡± He did not want to be a woman. He took the two photos from her hands and looked at them. Then, he widened his eyes and pointed to one of the photos, asking, ¡°Nana, are you sure you¡¯re looking for a wife for me? Why does it seem like you¡¯re looking for a brother for me instead?¡± One of the pictures was of a handsome man. Grandma May rolled her eyes at him. ¡°Have you heard of Ms. Stoll, President of Stoll Corporation in Annenburg? Casey Stoll was a woman who looked like a man. If it were not for her getting married and her pregnancy being almost due, many people would have thought that she was actually a man. Chapter 959 Chapter 959 Chapter 959 Callum pointed to the handsome man in the photo. ¡°So, he¡¯s a she?¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°She has a fraternal twin brother, but they look exactly the same. Her family raised her as a boy since childhood, so she acts like a man. People outside of her family think that she¡¯s the eldest son.¡± ¡°How did you know she¡¯s actually a woman?¡± Callum heard of Casey Stoll before, and he had seen pictures of her too. At first nce, she really did look like a man, but it was not because she was deliberately trying toe off as the opposite sex. She dressed androgynously, but since she was known for her power and influence, people misunderstood and thought she was a man. The handsome guy in the photo was different from Casey. She was raised as a man and also deliberately dressed like a man. She had thick eyebrows andrge eyes, looked grim and cold, and her tall figure was dressed in a suit. Anyone who looked at her would think she was a he. Callum flipped over the photo and read the woman¡¯s profile on the other side. ¡°Hayden Queen, 28 years old, ¡®eldest son¡® of the chairman of Queen Enterprise in Jensburg. She is now the president of Queen Enterprise after winning the trust of her father, the chairman. She is taciturn, highly effective, and her hobbies are ying basketball and horse riding.¡± ¡°Nana, is this all the information you have?¡± ¡°Yep, that¡¯s all the information I have. It¡¯s more than enough. All you have to know is her first andst name, how old she is, and where she lives. If you want to know more, you can find out for yourself.¡± Grandma May took back Hayden¡¯s photo from Callum¡¯s hand and said, ¡°This isn¡¯t for you, but for Kevin. Hayden is more reticent and speaks with her actions. She¡¯s more suitable for Kevin than you. ¡°Kevin has a big mouth and is good at talking. If he can win over Hayden, the couple won¡¯t live a spiritless life in the future together.¡± Callum was speechless. ¡°Nana, I¡¯m good at talking too.¡± ¡°Can youpare to Kevin?¡± Callum was at a loss for words. Kevin was the most articte out of all the brothers. Chapter ¡°Are you interested in Hayden?¡± Callum shook his head. ¡°That¡¯s not it. Since she¡¯s for Kevin, I¡¯ll take a look at the other one for now.¡± Only then did he look at the other photo carefully. This one was obviously a girl, but she was wearing sunsses, so he could not see how her eyes looked. Her small face looked even smaller after being covered by therge sunsses. However, he could tell that she was a delicate¨Clooking girl. He flipped to the back to read her profile. ¡°Camryn Newman, 26 years old, the niece and also stepdaughter to the president of Newman Enterprise from Wiltspoon. After the early death of her father, her mother married her uncle, who is the president of Newman Enterprise. Thus, she became the president¡¯s stepdaughter while also being his niece.¡± ¡°Nana, isn¡¯t Camryn blind?¡± Although the Newman family was from Wiltspoon, they mostly developed the founded. They did not darepete with York Corporation and Stone Group in Wiltspoon, so the bulk of their business was conducted elsewhere. In Wiltspoon, the Newmans were like a rich yet invisible family. In the eyes of others, they were simply well¨Cto¨Cdo, but in fact, their assets also numbered in the billions. ¡°She¡¯s just pretending to be blind.¡± Callum paused before asking, ¡°Does she have a story?¡± ¡°Yep. You can find out what that is by yourself.¡± Callum smacked his lips and said, ¡°I¡¯ve heard of her but never seen her before. Blind people are very on guard against other people. I¡¯m afraid it¡¯ll be hard to get close to her.¡± ¡°I already told you she¡¯s just pretending to be blind. I¡¯ve shown you her photo, so you know what she looks like now. She opened up a flower shop in the busiest part of the city and has two workers helping her. By the way, her flower shop often buys goods from our vi. Zack even bought a bouquet of flowers from her shop for Serenity.¡± Of course, Zachary did not realize that. Serenity was the only woman he paid attention to. ¡°Are there any other photos, Nana?¡± Chapter 960 Chapter 960 Chapter 960 ¡°No. I¡¯ll only help you and Kevin find a candidate for the time being. There¡¯s no hurry fo the others.¡± Callum tried to drag his younger brothers into this. ¡°Only Rowan is still a minor. Alex just turned twenty this year, and the others are at the legal marriageable age. You can¡¯t be biased, Nana. Let them all get married. The more granddaughters¨Cinw you have, the greater your chance of having a great¨C granddaughter.¡± Grandma May said, ¡°I¡¯m counting on Seren to give me a great¨Cgranddaughter. The fortune¨Cteller said that Seren¡¯s firstborn will be a girl.¡± Callum asked, ¡°When did you be so superstitious?¡± ¡°Since your big brother actually fell in love with Serenity. Fortune¨Ctelling is an age¨Cold art. It¡¯s worth believing in a little.¡± After she finished speaking, she stood up. ¡°I won¡¯t bother you with your work. I¡¯ll go to Liberty¡¯s shop to have a look. I miss Sonny after not seeing him for so long. Liberty¡¯s breakfast diner will be open for business soon, right?¡± Callum said, ¡°I didn¡¯t hear Serenity mentioning it. ¡± ¡°Serenity and Zack have been quarreling for a long time. It¡¯s better not to hear from her.¡± Callum was confused. It was only after his grandmother left and he thought carefully about it did he understand what she meant. Zachary was incredibly domineering. If he found out about something before Zachary did, Zachary might start throwing knives at him. Zachary got jealous of other women too, let alone them. Serenity arrived not long after Grandma May left. She sent Zachary¡¯s lunch over in advance, lest he was so busy he forgot to eat again. When her car stopped at the gate of York Corporation, the security guard on duty was ecstatic when he saw her. He immediately opened the gate, let her drive in, and called the front desk. When the call was picked up, the security guard said, ¡°The CEO¡¯s wife is here.¡± The CEO tortured the wholepany because of his wife. Now, his wife suddenly came. Everyone¡¯s bitter days would finallye to an end. Although the security department was not tortured by the CEO, they knew everyone was hoping that his wife would sweep in like a spring breeze blowing away the cold winter wind. Spring, no, summer would finallye to them. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. After all, it was still chilly in spring. After the receptionist received the news that the CEO¡¯s wife had arrived, she immediately called Mr. Chaplin on the inte and said, ¡°Mr. Chaplin, the boss¡¯s wife is here. She just arrived at the building.¡± Mr. Chaplin smiled brightly. ¡°Are you sure it¡¯s her?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± The receptionist saw Serenity carrying two insted lunch boxes and heading toward the lobby. She smiled. ¡°I saw her. She¡¯s holding two lunch boxes. She must have brought lunch for the boss. ¡°We don¡¯t have to work overtime until midnight anymore.¡± Mr. Chaplin sighed. ¡°Thank God.¡± Then, he happily hung up the phone. Serenity felt that everyone was smiling at her and showed her great enthusiasm this time. She thought, ¡®So this is how the CEO¡¯s wife is treated.¡® Chapter 961 Chapter 961 Chapter 961 ¡°Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Mrs. York.¡± The two receptionists greeted Serenity respectfully with a smile when they saw her Serenity smiled in return. The receptionists had always been very nice to her. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. One of the receptionists went around the desk and led Serenity toward the elevator entrance. She nced at the insted lunch boxes that Serenity was carrying. ¡°Zachary¡¯s stomach isn¡¯t feeling welltely, so I brought him food. It¡¯s almost lunch break, right?¡± Serenity came over early. The receptionist looked concerned. ¡°Mr. York¡¯s stomach isn¡¯t feeling well? He should take care of himself.¡± She thought in her heart, ¡®The CEO has been working all day nonstop recently and isn¡¯t having his meals on time. Most of the time, it¡¯s Mr. Chaplin who packs food for him to eat at the office, but I heard Mr. Chaplin say that Mr. York still often forgets to eat because of his busy schedule. ¡®It¡¯s only natural that he¡¯ll have stomach problems like that.¡® ¡°We¡¯re having our lunch break soon,¡± the receptionist added. She led Serenity to the CEO¡¯s exclusive elevator, pressed the button for the doors to remain open, and respectfully invited her into the elevator. Serenity entered with the two insted lunch boxes and smiled at the receptionist, then rode the elevator alone to the top floor. As soon as she got out of the elevator, she saw Mr. Chaplin¡¯s smiling face. She was stunned and stared at Mr. Chaplin, wondering why the man was smiling so widely that his eyes were closed. ¡°Hello, Mrs. York. I¡¯m Mr. York¡¯s secretary. You can call me Mr. Chaplin.¡± ¡°Hello, Mr. Chaplin.¡± Serenity greeted him politely. ¡°Is your boss free now? Can I go in? Or will I be disturbing him?¡± Mr. Chaplin smiled and said, ¡°No, you can just knock on the door.¡± He deliberately did not tell Zachary so thetter would be surprised. ¡°However, the COO is inside,¡± Mr. Chaplin pointed out. Callum came to Zachary toin about their nana forcing him to marry. She just gave him a photo so he knew what the woman looked like, how old she was, and what profession she was in now, but he had no idea about anything else. Serenity smiled. ¡°Okay. Thank you, Mr. Chaplin.¡± Fortunately, she came with two lunch boxes. If Callum wanted to eat together, there would be enough for both of them. Mr. Chaplin led Serenity to the door of Zachary¡¯s office and knocked on it. After gaining Zachary¡¯s permission to enter, Mr. Chaplin pushed open the door for Serenity and watched her go in alone. He did not follow. When Serenity went inside, he immediately closed the door, went back to his desk to clean up, and prepared to go on his lunch break. He could eat an extra serving for lunch today! His recent high¨Cstrung nerves finally able to rx. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary could not describe how he felt when he saw the person who came in was his beloved wife. He was overjoyed beyond words. ¡°Serenity.¡± Callum stood and greeted Serenity, and took the initiative to give her his seat. Zachary dropped his pen and got up to meet his wife. Callum silently retreated to the side, thinking, ¡®I talked to him for more than half an hour, but he didn¡¯t even raise his head, let alone answer me. It¡¯s like he became a different person when Serenity came in.¡® However, Callum was also happy to see Serenity. Everyone knew that Grandma May forbade Zachary from disturbing Serenity from taking her time to calm down. Zachary did not feel good when he could not see his wife, so he started to torture everyone else. Maybe he did not know how tiring it was for other people below him when they could not keep up with his high efficiency. Chapter 962 Chapter 962 Chapter 962 ¡°Seren, why didn¡¯t you tell me you wereing? I would¡¯ve gone downstairs to pick you up.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Zachary took the insted lunch boxes from his wife, fearing that she would be tired from carrying them. He turned around to ce the two boxes on his desk, then led her by the hand to sit on the sofa. His fiery eyes glued to her body. Callum spat in his heart, ¡®If he could dig out his eyeballs and stick them on Serenity, I guess he would do it without hesitation.¡® ¡°It¡¯s not the first time I came to your office. You don¡¯t have to pick me up. I brought you food, so eat it while it¡¯s hot. Eating your meals on time every day will help your stomach recover.¡± Zachary grinned. ¡°Thank you, honey.¡± Serenity could not help but pinch his cheery face and smile. ¡°Is thepany giving out bonuses today? Everyone I saw today was beaming brightly.¡± Callum chimed in with augh, ¡°Serenity, having youe here is more gratifying than getting a bonus.¡± Zachary looked at his brother. ¡®Didn¡¯t you see that my wife brought me lunch? Why are you still standing there like a statue? Get out!¡® ¡°Callum, bring the lunch over. I brought a lot of food, so there¡¯s enough for both of you to eat.¡± Callum immediately picked up the lunch boxes from the desk and ced them on the coffee table. He sat down and was just about to open the boxes when he noticed Zachary ring at him intently. Callum froze. Zachary¡¯s smile was gone, and his dark eyes red at his brother as if he were throwing knives. Callum¡¯s skin pricked from the re. ¡°I¨CI¡¯ll just open up the boxes for you and see what Serenity prepared for you, Zachary.¡± Although he was being red at, he opened up the boxes as if nothing was wrong. Chapter 962 2/2 When he saw the food inside, he praised Serenity for her good cooking skills. The food she made really smelled heavenly. ¡°It smells great.¡± Callum unpacked everyyer of the lunch boxes and ced them on the coffee table. Besides food, there was also soup. ¡°I have ns for lunch, so I won¡¯t fight Zachary for the food. Serenity, you guys have a good chat. I¡¯ll go now.¡± Then, Callum got up and left. Zachary¡¯s tense face finally eased when Callum sensibly left. Serenity did not insist on Callum eating with them after hearing that he had ns for lunch. Callum opened the door and went out. As soon as he left, Zachary was all smiles again. The smile had just appeared on his face when the office door was opened again, and Callum popped back in. ¡°Why are you back here?¡± Zachary snapped at him. ¡°I forgot to take the photo. I¡¯m going to the hotel now, so I¡¯ll bring it to Kevin while I¡¯m there.¡± Grandma May was going ording to chronological order. Callum was her second grandson and was only one year younger than Zachary. He would be turning thirty this year, and Kevin was one year younger than him. Both of them were at the age to get married. In the past, Zachary manned the fort and was at the frontline of Grandma May¡¯s aim. Now that Zachary was married, it was natural that Grandma May could not wait to move on to Callum and Kevin. Callum walked back to the desk and picked up the photos he brought to show Zachary. However, Zachary did not even nce at them. ¡°Let me see the photos.¡± Zachary was not interested before because they were pictures of women that Grandma May picked for Callum and Kevin. Neither did he look at them, nor was he interested to begin with. The only woman he was into was his Seren. Chapter 963 Chapter 963 chapter 963 Zachary wanted to see the photos now because Serenity was present. There was new gossip to be heard, so of course he wanted to let his beloved wife in On it Callum was not stupid and knew that Zachary was using Kevin and him as gossip material for Serenity. s, he was betraying his brothers for his wife. As Callum handed over the two photos, he despised himself for hisck of backbone. Zachary was selling him out to please his sister¨Cinw, but he was still bending over backward to go along with it. If his rtionship did not go smoothly in the future and he needed his brother¡¯s and sister¨Cinw¡¯s help, he hoped the young couple would lend him a hand unconditionally. Bah, what was he thinking? His rtionship was sure to be smooth sailing. In any case, he would not get married out of the blue or hide the marriage. He would not conceal his identity to lie to his wife either. Everything would go smoothly. ¡°What photos?¡± Sure enough, Serenity was interested. Zachary presented the two photos to Serenity like they were treasures and exined, ¡°It¡¯s Nana. She¡¯s worried about our brothers¡® marriage and has been running around trying to find candidates for Callum and Kevin.¡± Kevin was the third young master of the York family, as well as the eldest son of Zachary¡¯s third uncle. He was in charge of the hotel industry under York Corporation. He had the gift of the gab, but he was quite dangerous under his smiling face. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had a deep impression on all the children of the York family. All of them were very attractive. She grabbed the photos to look at them and said, ¡°Nana is worried about your marriage because she¡¯s bored. With your conditions, there are plenty of women lining up to marry you as long as you¡¯re willing to.¡± However, it just so happened that these exceptional men were not anxious about Chapter 963 When Zachary and she got marriedst year, Zachary was thirty years old. Callum was one year younger than Zachary and would be turning thirty this year. An ordinary man would already be a father at this age. ¡°Is Nana looking for a brother or a wife for Callum and Kevin?¡± Serenity asked Zachary in amusement when she saw Hayden¡¯s photo. Callum said, ¡°There¡¯s information about them written on the back of the photos. Nana said the one you¡¯re looking at now is for Kevin. She wants Kevin to find a way to get acquainted with Hayden, then pursue and marry her within a year. Nana doesn¡¯t care what Kevin does as long as he seeds. ¡°If he fails, she¡¯ll kick him out of the house. Nana took the photo with her when she left earlier, but she came back to give it to me so I can pass it to Kevin.¡± Callum felt that Grandma May told him to give the photo to Kevin because she would not be able to convince Kevin herself. If Grandma May were here, she would say, ¡®Who said I won¡¯t be able to convince Kevin? I¡¯m just in a rush to see Sonny since I miss him.¡® She refused to admit that Kevin inherited her sharp tongue. In fact, he was even better than her when she was in her youth. She was no match for Kevin when it came to verbal battles. Serenity flipped over the photo and read the information on the back. There, it was written that Hayden Queen was the ¡°eldest son¡± of the president of Queen Enterprise. Since it was written in quotation marks, it seemed that she was not actually the oldest son. ¡°He¡¯s a she?¡± ¡°Yep, she¡¯s a woman who disguised herself as a man for more than twenty years. It¡¯s like the saying, fake it till you make it. She¡¯s different from Casey Stoll from Annenburg.¡± Casey simply dressed androgynously, which made people think she was a man. However, Hayden deliberately disguised herself as a man. No one knew if it was because she was born that way or if she deliberately modified her body, but she was six feet tall¨Cextraordinarily tall for a woman. Chapter 964 Chapter 964 Chapter 964 Callum remembered that Kevin was six feet two and understood Grandma May¡¯s arrangements. Callum was only five foot seven. If he were to get together with Hayden, she would be taller than him. Out of the nine brothers, Kevin was the tallest. ¡°Even if a woman dresses up as a man, there¡¯ll be signs. A woman¡¯s Adam¡¯s apple is less obvious.¡± Serenity stared at Hayden¡¯s picture. Her interest was genuinely piqued. ¡®Why did she pretend to be a man for more than twenty years?¡® ¡°Seren, there are clothes to hide the Adam¡¯s apple.¡± Serenity was speechless. She did not think of that. ¡°Who is Casey Stoll?¡± she asked curiously. Zachary took the initiative to exin, ¡°She¡¯s the president of Stoll Corporation in Annenburg. She¡¯s a little pitiful. She lost all her family members except for her little sister, so she had no choice but to take over the family business. Her life has been quite hard. She often dresses in unisex clothing, but she¡¯s very powerful and influential, so people mistake her for being a man. ¡°Her sister and she have both married, and she looks more like a woman now. Oh, her husband is the older brother of Ben¡¯s wife. Ben is the head of the richest family in Annenburg, the Johnsons. He¡¯s Remy¡¯s older brother. You¡¯ve met Remy before. ¡°I¡¯ll tell you the story about their family in detail another time. It¡¯s ratherplicated. FC & Co. belongs to the Johnson family, and York Corporation works closely with them. I¡¯ll bring you to Anneburg to meet them one day when I¡¯m free.¡± Although the twopanies were in different cities, they worked closely together. Zachary had also asked Ben for advice regarding his rtionship with Serenity. Although the results were not as good as he had imagined, they at least helped him muster up the courage to confess. After bearing through the storm for a period of time, he seemed to finally see the rainbow after the rain. Zachary was grateful to Ben. He thought about it and decided to take Serenity to Annenburg to be a guest at FC Manor one day. That way, Serenity could be friends with Jane, the missus of the Johnson family. It would raise Serenity¡¯s standing if she had a friend of Jane¡¯s status. After looking at Hayden¡¯s photo and learning that she was the candidate Grandma May had picked for Kevin, she handed the photo back to Callum and said with a smile, ¡°I believe in Nana. If she thinks that Ms. Queen is suitable for Kevin, then I¡¯m sure she is.¡± Zachary echoed, ¡°Although Nana is like an old child, she¡¯s a good judge of people. She¡¯s our nana¨C we¡¯re thest people she would try to harm.¡± Callum pouted. The couple seemed to have reconciled, so Zachary was starting to praise Grandma May again. Zachary did not think that highly of their nana when he was forced to get married. ¡°Is this one the one Nana picked out for you?¡± Serenity looked at Camryn¡¯s picture, then at Callum, and smiled. ¡°It looks like a good match. Nana is still partial to you. She picked someone who¡¯s local to Wiltspoon so it¡¯s easier for you to pursue her. Meanwhile, Kevin¡¯s candidate lives all the way in Jensburg.¡± Jensburg and Wiltspoon were in different provinces. Although with the established and ease of connectivity, it would still take a few hours to get from Wiltspoon to Jensburg, whether it was by ne or high¨Cspeed rail. It was far away in Serenity¡¯s eyes. She asked her man, ¡°Does York Corporation have a branch in Jensburg?¡± ¡°Yes, but it¡¯s not that big. We hired a manager to handle the branch there. ¡°Our family¡¯s main industry in Jensburg is the hotels. There are six five¨Cstar hotels in Jensburg, two of which are owned by our family.¡± Serenity was struck by a realization. ¡°No wonder Nana chose someone from Jensburg for Kevin.¡± It was because Kevin was responsible for all the hotels under York Corporation.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 965 Chapter 965 Chapter 965 Zachary and Callum said in their hearts, ¡®Nana won¡¯t do anything she¡¯s uncertain about.¡® Zachary took Camryn¡¯s photo from his beloved wife¡¯s hand and handed it to Callum, then started to re at thetter again. Callum was speechless¡­ ¡°I¡¯ll go now, Zachary and Serenity. You guys continue chatting. Eat more, Zachary!¡± What a cheapskate! Serenity said there was enough food for them to eat together, but Zachary would not let him eat! He could only find an excuse to leave, but he could not let Serenity notice that it was because Zachary was being stingy and not letting him stay. Callum left, leaving the young couple in the office. ¡°Have you eaten, Seren?¡± ¡°I ate before I came here.¡± Serenity would not let herself go hungry. Zachary was just about to reach out for the food when his wife smacked his hand. ¡°You¡¯re an adult. Use a spoon.¡± She handed him the utensils. ¡°Hurry up and eat. Cold food isn¡¯t good for your stomach.¡± Zachary took the spoon and said to Serenity, ¡°I¡¯ll eat now, honey.¡± ¡°Go ahead.¡± Zachary dug in. ¡°Seren, are you still feeling ufortable today? Does your stomach hurt?¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°No, I drank the hot cocoa you made for me. It doesn¡¯t hurt this time.¡± Zachary hummed and asked tentatively, ¡°Seren, let¡¯s go to your sister¡¯s ce to get all your stuff back when we have time.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t bring many things to my sister¡¯s ce. It¡¯s just a few sets of clothes. Just leave them there so I can stay over there anytime I want to.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll buy you a few more sets of clothes.¡± ¡°No need. I¡¯ve spent almost all of my savings buying clothes, shoes, and formal dresses. My closet is stuffed to the brim.¡± She had to learn from her aunt how to socialize. Under her aunt and Elisa¡¯s critical eyes, she was forced to buy many new clothes. Her aunt told her that her identity was different now. If she did not dress well, she would be talked about by others. if she dressed well, she would be a goal worthy of people pursuing. In short, she was now Mrs. York and all eyes were on her now. ¡°There¡¯s plenty of money in the household card. You can swipe that card if you need to buy anything. There¡¯s no need to spend your own savings.¡± For people who lived in that circle, Serenity¡¯s many years of savings was nothing much to them. Serenity said nothing. Zachary leaned over and kissed her on the face. She immediately pushed him away and wiped the spot he kissed with a napkin, saying, ¡°Don¡¯t kiss me when your mouth is oily.¡± ¡°Honey, I¡¯m working hard to earn money to give you a good life. If you don¡¯t spend my money, I¡¯d be tiring myself out for nothing.¡± ¡°Do youck money? You don¡¯t need to work that hard. Even if you marry a hundred of me as your wives, we won¡¯t be able to finish spending all your money. In the future, you have to go to work on time, but you¡¯re not allowed to work overtime. Even if you do, you have toe home before ten at night.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes were full of indulgence. ¡°I¡¯ll do just that, honey.¡± With the spring breeze called Serenity Hunt blowing into York Corporation, theyers of ice in the company meltedpletely. Serenity stopped bringing up how Zachary lied to her, and Zachary sensibly did not take the initiative to mention it either. In the future, he had to double his love for this woman. ¡°Mrs. Stone is pregnant. Should we send some supplements over?¡± Chapter 966 Chapter 966 Chapter 966 Zachary casually raised the question as he pulled Serenity¡¯s hand over to y with after he finished eating. Thest time he met Clive, he even mentioned how Clive had not had a child despite several years of marriage. Now, Alice suddenly got pregnant. He wondered when his Seren would get pregnant too. Zachary was not in a hurry to have a baby. He just liked the process. After remaining chaste for so long, all the cells in his body were screaming at him, desiring Serenity. Unfortunately, he had to hold back for a while longer. He pulled her hand up to check her injured finger and make sure that it was recovering well. Lowering his head, he tenderly kissed the wounded finger. It was his fault that caused her to get hurt. ¡°I talked to Liberty about it. She¡¯ll go buy some supplements. She¡¯s a mother, so she knows more than I do. Once she buys them, we¡¯ll send them over together.¡± Serenity was genuinely happy about Alice¡¯s pregnancy. ¡°That¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll reimburse Liberty for the money she spent on the supplements.¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°What?¡± ¡°I just wanted to call your name and hear your voice.¡± Zachary pulled her into his iron grip and wrapped her soft and delicate body tightly.¡± Seren, you don¡¯t know how much I¡¯ve missed you on days I couldn¡¯t go to you.¡± Serenity leaned against his chest and listened to him whisper about his pain and longing. In fact, she did not have a good time either. Of course, she was still much better offpared to him. ¡°The others are still on their lunch break, so take a rest so you have the energy to continue your work later.¡± ¡°Will you apany me?¡± Serenity raised her head in his arms. After looking at him for a moment, she finally nodded. Zachary¡¯s heart rejoiced. He immediately picked her up and walked into the lounge. While the young couple reconciled, Grandma May arrived at the breakfast ce when Liberty was feeding Sonny. ¡°Grandma May, what brings you here?¡± Liberty put down the bowl and got up to greet the old woman. ¡°I came over to see how your diner is doing.¡± After entering the store, Grandma May looked around at all the furnishings and said,¡± It¡¯s not big, but it¡¯s clean and tidy. People who enter will feel that the store¡¯s hygiene conditions are up to standard. They¡¯ll feel more at ease eating here.¡± Libertyughed. ¡°It¡¯s a new store that was freshly renovated, so of course it looks clean and tidy. I¡¯ll continue keeping it that way when it opens up for business.¡± Grandma May nodded. ¡°That¡¯s the least you should do. Don¡¯t throw away your conscience for the sake of making money. God won¡¯t mistreat good people.¡± ¡°I know, Grandma May.¡± Grandma May saw how Sonny picked up the bowl and fed himself after Liberty put the bowl down, and said, ¡°Sonny is growing up so fast. He knows how to eat by himself now. You can send him to preschool. That way, you¡¯ll be more rxed too. ¡°Are you hiring anyone to help out?¡± Liberty helped the olddy sit down. ¡°The store isn¡¯t open yet, so I don¡¯t know what business will be like. I¡¯ll handle it by myself for now. I¡¯ll consider hiring someone to help if business is good. Seren and Mrs. Lane will being over to help on opening day.¡± ¡°Tell me if you need help. I¡¯m old and can¡¯t help much, but I have nine grandchildren. All I have to do is give the word and they¡¯ll send people over to help you.¡± Liberty quickly said, ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. I¡¯ll hire someone if business is good.¡± That was overkill. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. The children of the York family were all destined for great things. She was just opening a breakfast diner. There was no need for them toe to help Chapter 967 Chapter 967 Chapter 967 Grandma May nagged Liberty. ¡°Your sister and you don¡¯t know how to use the York family name for your own benefit. If you agree to let me arrange for those boys toe over and support your restaurant, I guarantee that your business will be booming.¡± If all nine young masters of the York family came here for breakfast, they would be a walking advertisement. However, Liberty refused. ¡°Nana, we want to rely on ourselves. My aunt is also always saying that she wants to help me. The pressure on Seren will be greater if I refuse. ¡°Have you eaten yet? We can eat together if you don¡¯t mind.¡± Liberty fed her son first and had yet to eat. Grandma May said bluntly, ¡°I¡¯ve had all sorts of food before. Of course, I won¡¯t mind eating with you. In fact, I¡¯d love to.¡± She was used to eating extravagantly, but it would be nice to have a change of pte. Liberty brought out the te of spaghetti she made and said sheepishly, ¡°I only made spaghetti because I thought only Sonny and I would be eating.¡± It was simple spaghetti and meatballs. Grandma May said, ¡°Oh shush, you know me. I wouldn¡¯t havee over at this time if I didn¡¯t want to have lunch with you.¡± She went to get a bowl for herself. Grandma May was down¨Cto¨Cearth. Liberty liked her temperament very much. Since Grandma May did not mind the simple meal, she did not feel embarrassed either. The three of them sat at the table for lunch when the store door opened. ¡°Sonny, I bought you a¡­ Grandma May?¡± Duncan bought another big windmill for Sonny and called Sonny¡¯s name as he entered. When he saw Grandma May, he instantly froze and suddenly felt guilty for no reason. Then, he tried to turn and run away. ¡°Duncan, why are you running away at the sight of me?¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Duncan stopped again, turned around, and re-entered the store. He grinned and said, ¡°Grandma May, I¡¯m not running away at the sight of you. I just suddenly remembered that I left my phone in the car. I was just going back to get it.¡± Grandma May nced at his trouser pocket. ¡°Isn¡¯t that your phone in your pocket?¡± Duncan touched his pants andughed. ¡°Oh, you¡¯re right. My memory is getting worse as I get older. I can¡¯t even remember that my phone is in my pocket.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t talk about being old in front of me. Are you as old as I am?¡± Duncan smiled sheepishly. Liberty asked, ¡°Have you eaten, Mr. Lewis?¡± There was barely enough food for Grandma May since the olddy did not eat much. If Duncan joined them, then Liberty would have to cook again. ¡°If he hasn¡¯t eaten at this time, then he deserves to be hungry.¡± Duncan was speechless. ¡°I¡¯ve eaten, Liberty. You and Grandma May take your time eating. Sonny, I bought you another windmill.¡± He handed the windmill to Sonny and spoke in a fawning voice. Sonny looked at the windmill and continued to eat. Duncan only knew how to buy windmills and nothing else for him¨Cit was eitherrge or small ones. The windmills Duncan bought were not as interesting as the food in his bowl. ¡°Duncan, Sonny is a very clever boy.¡± Chapter 968 Chapter 968 Chapter 968 Grandma May put down her fork. She was full. Duncan agreed. ¡°Yes, Sonny is indeed smart.¡± ¡°Then why are you buying windmills for him? If you want to buy toys, then buy him some educational toys. There¡¯s no novelty if you only buy him windmills. Can¡¯t you see how he¡¯s more interested in his food?¡± Her grandson and his friend were two peas in a pod. Josh was the exception. His mouth was as crafty as Kevin¡¯s. Grandma May was not sure if Duncan was interested in Liberty, but she could tell that he was trying to appeal to Sonny. It looked like he was trying to make Sonny call him ¡°Dad¡°. Duncan would have thought to himself, ¡®I just like Sonny¡­¡® He smiled sheepishly and said, ¡°I¡¯ve never had a child before, so I don¡¯t know what toys children like. Sonny was very happy thest time I gave him a windmill and even let me hold him. I thought he liked windmills, so I bought another one for him.¡± Grandma May was speechless. Did Duncan not know what change meant? She wondered if her old friend, Old Mrs. Lewis, was angered to death by her grandson, Duncan. Her nine grandchildren were enough to give her a headache. However,pared to Duncan, she felt that her grandsons were all much better than him. Noparison, no despair. Seeing how awkward Duncan was, Liberty helped her son take the windmill from Duncan¡¯s hand and said with a smile, ¡°Sonny still likes ying with windmills. Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± She motioned for her son to thank Duncan. Sonny finished all the food in his bowl. After putting down the bowl, he wiped the grease on his mouth with a napkin. Then, he took the windmill from his mother and politely thanked Duncan. ¡°Thank you.¡± Duncan smiled. ¡°You¡¯re wee. If you like it, I¡¯ll buy more for you next time.¡± Sonny quickly said, ¡°I already have lots of toys. I don¡¯t need more.¡± Ever since Elisa often bought him many interesting new toys, he had no shortage of toys. Duncan looked around the store again and said, ¡°It looks good, Liberty. It¡¯s very bright. Business will definitely be booming.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll work hard.¡± Liberty turned to the cashier¡¯s desk, opened the drawer with a key, and took out a stack of money before handing it to Duncan. ¡°This is the rent for this month, Mr. Lewis. I wanted to hand it to your housekeeper, but I¡¯ll give it to you since you¡¯re already here. You can tell the housekeeper that I paid you the rent straight.¡± Under Grandma May¡¯s watchful eyes, Duncan took the pile of money with a cool look. ¡°Is this inclusive of the utility bills?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Duncan hummed and started counting the money up front. Grandma May muttered in her heart, ¡®Have I grown old? Am I just deluding myself? ¡®Maybe Duncan has no interest in Liberty, and their rtionship is purely one between andlord and tenant?¡® Liberty had lost dozens of pounds. Although she could not be considered thin, she lost a lot of weight compared to before the divorce. Now, she just looked chubby. She was still exercising to lose weight. Grandma May believed that in a few months, she would be able to regain her slim figure and beauty. Duncan had a scar on his face, and his character was rough, so he was still single at the age of thirty¨C six. Other men his age would have two children already, but he had not even touched a woman¡¯s hand before. His mother was worried about his marriage, but there was no follow¨Cup whenever she arranged for Duncan to go on dates. She was furious but could do nothing about 1. it. Duncan relied on himself instead of his family to get to where he was. Thus, his mother had no way to pressure him. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only After counting the money, Duncan took out his phone and called the housekeeper to ask about the utility bills for Liberty¡¯s store. He did not notice the frustrated look that Grandma May was shooting at him. Chapter 969 Chapter 969 Chapter 969 Grandma May was d that Duncan was not her grandson. When she thought of Zachary, she sighed silently. Birds of a feather flock together. Duncan was a good friend of Zachary, and they shared many simrities between them. After Duncan checked the utility bill with the housekeeper, he hung up the phone and said, ¡°The amount is just right.¡± He took out his wallet, stuffed the rent he had just received into it, and said to Liberty, ¡°Just use Apple Pay to transfer the amount to my housekeeper or me in the future. I¡¯ll tell him to keep a record.¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Liberty hummed and exined, ¡°I transferred the amountst month, but the card I linked to my ount reached its limit this month, so I had to withdraw cash with my bankbook.¡± The bank card she tied to her Apple Pay ount was for daily living expenses. She kept most of her money in another ount. ¡°Well, do you need help with anything else?¡± Liberty quickly said, ¡°Everything is ready. We¡¯re just waiting to open.¡± ¡°Have you distributed flyers?¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. The store has been under renovation for a long time, so everyone walking by has seen it. Now that my sign board is up, everyone can see what business I¡¯m running.¡± Her target market was the employees of nearbypanies and factories. It would be hard attracting workers from far away even if she wanted to. Thepetition was fierce as many breakfast diners operated on this street. She hoped she could make a living here. She invested all of her hopes in this store. Duncan said nothing. After wandering around the store, he wanted to sit down but realized Grandma May was still staring at him. He felt guilty. He was not doing anything wrong, but why did he feel guilty when she stared at him like that? ¡°Carry on then. I¡¯ll go now. I¡¯lle over to support you on opening day.¡± Duncan did not dare stay long, fearing Grandma May¡¯s eyes that seemed to be able to see through him. It was no wonder someone as strong as Zachary was forced to get married. Grandma May was a formidable person. At that thought, Duncan could not help but remember his own grandmother. If she was still alive, maybe he would be married now as well. The only difference between Zachary and him was that his friend still had his nana. ¡°You¡¯re a busy man, Mr. Lewis. Just tell me in advance what you want to eat for breakfast and I¡¯ll prepare it for you. You cane in and pack it away when you pass by. There¡¯s no need for you to wait long and take up your time.¡± There was also no need for a high and mighty CEO like him to sit in her small store for breakfast. Liberty felt that someone like Duncan should have breakfast in a ce like Wiltspoon Hotel, not her little breakfast diner. ¡°It¡¯s fine.¡± Duncan just wanted to show up and support Liberty. Chapter 970 Chapter 970 Chapter 970 ¡°I¡¯ll go now, Grandma May.¡± Duncan bent down to ruffle Sonny¡¯s head and bid goodbye to Grandma May. When the old woman hummed, he quickly went away. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Grandma May watched him drive away and looked at Liberty, who was back at the register. She had a small book out as well as a calctor, counting how much money she had spent on the store and its renovations. Grandma May thought, ¡®Seems like I was overthinking it.¡® Liberty had no interest in Duncan. However, she sat in front of Liberty and asked tentatively, ¡°Liberty, what ns do you have for the future?¡± ¡°I hope that All You Can Eat can open countless branches all over the country.¡± ¡°Business is important, but what about your private life? You¡¯re still only thirty¨Cone. You¡¯re very young. Have you considered it? I meant what I said back then. If you¡¯re willing, I¡¯ll introduce to you a dedicated and capable young man. ¡°I guarantee that your second marriage will be better than your first. You¡¯ll live a hundred times better than your ex¨Chusband. Let him regret it.¡± Libertyughed. ¡°Nana, you have nine grandsons. Except for the oldest and youngest ones, the remaining seven are all of marriageable age, but they¡¯re all still single. Isn¡¯t it enough to worry about them?¡± Grandma May pulled Sonny over and sat him down on herp. Sheughed and said, ¡°I¡¯m old now and can¡¯t do anything else. My grandsons take care of me and won¡¯t let me work, so I can only take up the job of a matchmaker out of boredom. Just this morning, I brought two photos to Callum and told him and Kevin to woo their wives ording to the goal I gave them. They should be able to shed their bachelor status in a year. I ¡°I¡¯m not that worried about my grandsons under twenty¨Cfive. Only the first six are over twenty¨Cfive, and the younger three are still young. There¡¯s no worry. Men matureter and are not as precocious as women. They can only support a small family when they marry at an older age.¡± If a man married too young, he would still be a child at heart and was not capable of raising a family. ¡°My sixth grandson will be turning twenty-five this year, but I¡¯m in no rush for him either. After Callum and Kevin are done, I¡¯ll move on to my fourth and fifth grandsons. When I find a good candidate, I¡¯ll bring the photos to them so they canplete their task. ¡°In a year¡¯s time, I¡¯d have solved the marriages of four grandsons.¡± Liberty was dumbfounded. With that speed, even if Grandma May had a hundred grandchildren, she would be able to make all of them marry soon. ¡°Mr. Young¨CJohnson also asked Zack for my help to settle his brother¡¯s marriage. I¡¯ve met Remy before. He¡¯s a very good man, so I¡¯m looking for a suitable candidate as his wife now¡­¡± ¡°Grandma May, I¡¯m divorced and a single mother. I have no intention of remarrying for the time being.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t introduce Remy to you. He lives too far away. Seren can¡¯t bear for you to marry far away.¡± Liberty was speechless. ¡°I¡¯m telling you this because I want you to know that I can really help you find a man. You¡¯ll be happier in your second marriage.¡± Liberty politely refused. ¡°Grandma May, I don¡¯t have the heart to think about love now. I¡¯ve known Hank for more than ten years, but we divorced after less than four years of marriage. We almost became enemies too. It¡¯s enough to torment me. ¡°What has marriage brought me? The only good thing I got out of that marriage was Sonny. ¡°I have to think about Sonny too. His biological father already neglects him, let alone a stepfather. What I want now is to raise Sonny well. I don¡¯t need anything else.¡± Grandma May was silent, then said, ¡°Then let nature take its course. There are some stepmothers and stepfathers who can also give their hearts and souls to their stepchildren.¡± They simply numbered in the minority. Duncan was the fourth young master of the Lewis family. Mrs. Lewis had high standards and always matched Duncan withdies whose families met their status. Chapter 971 Chapter 971 Chapter 971 The possibility of Liberty and Duncan being together was rather slim. It had never been Liberty¡¯s wish to marry into a wealthy family. The sisters were not ones with wishful ambitions. Grandma May gave up on the idea. After leaving Liberty¡¯s restaurant, Duncan returned to Lewis & Co. and walked into the office to lie on the sofa. He pulled out his phone and gave Zachary a text message. It was quiet during lunchtime in the office. Duncan: [Can I bother you?] R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Zachary was having the sleep of his life since he managed to convince his wife to stay at the office for a nap. Duncan¡¯s untimely message woke him up. He would probably travel through the radio wave to give Duncan a beating if the guy was not his best friend. Serenity was still asleep. Zachary gave her a peck on the lips before grabbing his phone. He tiptoed out of the private resting room and approached a sofa to lie down like Duncan was. ¡°What do you want?¡± Duncan¡¯s mind was still nk by the time his best friend answered, so he replied, ¡± Nothing.¡± Zachary flipped out. He dialed Duncan¡¯s number. Once Duncan picked up the call, Zachary gave Duncan a piece of his mind. Duncan said, ¡°I don¡¯t think you¡¯re Zachary¡­ You can¡¯t be Zachary withnguage like that.¡± ¡°I would¡¯ve beaten you up if you weren¡¯t Duncan. It¡¯s been rough for me. Seren only went soft on me when it came to my health. She finally agreed to move back with me and make me packed lunches to watch my nutrition. Nothing¡¯s bothering you, and yet you came to disrupt my sleep. You were asking for it.¡± Duncan chuckled. ¡°Oh, did you kiss and make up? Let¡¯s have dinner sometime since all is good now. I couldn¡¯t ask you out when you weren¡¯t in the best of moods. Alcohol is thest thing you need.¡± Zachary felt better after tearing Duncan a new one. ¡°Hurry up and tell me what¡¯s on your mind. Otherwise, don¡¯t disturb my break. Everybody knew that he would rest after lunch. ¡°It¡¯s nothing really. I was passing by your sister¨Cinw¡¯s breakfast diner while on my way to work. I dropped in for a visit and to give Sonny a pinwheel, and your nana was there. ¡°Your sister¨Cinw gave me the rent money in cash, but somehow, I felt guilty when I looked at your nana. What do you think? Did I cross your nana in any way?¡± ¡°God knows what you did. I¡¯m not your shadow. I don¡¯t follow you around and know your every move.¡± Duncan was wasting his time over tiny matters. Was Duncan bragging to him about collecting rent? Zachary rented outmercial spaces too, and his annual rental ie was a lot more than Duncan¡¯s. Duncan fell silent before replying, ¡°Man, you¡¯re all riled up. I guess you aren¡¯t getting something.¡± ¡°We¡¯ll see if you¡¯ll be happy when I intrude on your intimate moment with your girl.¡± ¡°My woman is not born yet. I might not find someone for me ever. You and Josh found your special someone, so we belong to different worlds now. I¡¯m cutting ties with you two.¡± It was a joke. ¡°That reminds me. Do you know that the Zimmers went bankrupt? Their house is up for sale to pay the debt. Are you interested in buying?¡± ¡°I¡¯d rather invest in new development. The Zimmers might have a spacious vi, but it¡¯s secondhand.¡± Duncan uttered with a smile, ¡°The Zimmers are the Stones¡® neighbor. By the Stone family, I mean your wife¡¯s aunt. You could give the ce aplete facelift if you purchase it. It can make a nice marital home and give your wife easy ess to her aunt¡¯s ce. ¡°I bet your wife will be happy.¡± Zachary was speechless. The Zimmers once enjoyed fame and fortune back in the day to live next to the Stone family. It was a shame that the family¡¯s descendants had not been doing too well at keeping the business running. The Zimmers¡¯ family business was in the red and they needed to sell the house off to get out of debt. Chapter 972 Chapter 972 Chapter 972 ¡°Clive probably made a deal on the house.¡± Since the estates were next to each other, it made sense for Clive to buy the property next door and tear down the fence in between to connect the two houses. It would expand the square footage of the Stones¡®nd. The Stones had the money anyway. Who could beat Clive if he had his eyes on the property? ¡°I can help you to ask around now if you¡¯re interested. Hang on.¡± Since Duncan felt bad for waking his best friend up, he tried to think of something to make up for it. That was how the Zimmers¡® vi came to mind. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Using another phone, Duncan checked with his source and quickly got a reply. The Zimmers¡® vi was not on the market anyway. Duncan asked his source thinking it was Clive, but his source had no idea who had purchased the house, and that it was not Clive. Clive was one step behind buying the Zimmers¡® vi to expand his family¡¯snd as someone else had bought the house off. Sure, the Zimmers¡® property was preowned, but the ce boasted a generous space, so everybody was after thend. As for the house itself, the buyer would probably get a major overhaul of the building structure as Duncan had said. The Zimmers had a lot of memories of the house, but it was time for others to create something anew. Out with the old and in with the new. Since money was no object, the resident would spare no expenses to bring their dream home to life. Duncan replied, ¡°See. The nice estate is high in demand. Someone got it before Clive.¡± ¡°Who bought the ce?¡± That was quick. ¡°No idea, but we¡¯ll soon find out.¡± Zachary was not bothered as he had a lot of properties. It was all about the location for Zachary when it came to real estate. He was after the long-term investment, so he would look at the neighborhood, the location, the size, and the age of the property. Zachary would prefer to get the property as it was. ¡°Well, I¡¯ll leave you to enjoy your break, Zachary.¡± With nothing more to talk about, Duncan quickly hung up the call. Zachary yelled at the disconnected call, ¡°Weirdo.¡± Duncan came in between him holding his wife to sleep. ¡°Zachary.¡± Serenity walked out of the private resting room. ¡°You¡¯re up, honey. Did the phone call wake you?¡± Zachary swiftly got up and approached Serenity. Holding her by the waist, he brought her to the sofa where the couple sat down. ¡°No. I woke up on my own. Who were you on the phone with?¡± Serenity was only making conversation, so it did not matter to her whether Zachary answered or not. Zachary answered, ¡°Duncan called and talked about trivial things that are not worth the mention. I don¡¯t know what has gotten into him. That was a strange call.¡± He then ryed the phone conversation with Duncan to his wife. Zachary had promised that there would be no more lies. He would be honest with Serenity so long as it was no trade secrets. Chapter 973 Chapter 973 Chapter 973 Plopping herself in Zachary¡¯s arms, Serenity yawned and said, ¡°I forgot to talk to you about one thing.¡± ¡°What¡¯s that?¡± Zachary took anything that came out of his wife¡¯s mouth seriously-no matter how trivial. ¡°My money-hungry rtives are nning the old switcheroo. They want my cousin to go under the knife to look like me and rece me as Mrs. York.¡± Zachary glowered. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°My cousin is as old as I am. Our dads look a little alike. Plus, we both take after our dads. I guess you can say that we kinda resemble each other. At least, that was what people used to say when we were little. haven¡¯t seen her for more than a decade after my parents¡® passing. I don¡¯t know what she looks like now.¡± Zachary uttered with a scowl, ¡°These people have their heads in the clouds. Seren, is my father¨Cinw really your grandparents¡® son?¡± ¡°That¡¯s not important when you have parents who y favorites. There are cases where the child can get less attention than an adopted child too. ¡°Harriet must be going for stic surgery, but I have no idea where the surgery will take ce. Can you look into it and stop her from looking like me? I got the word out of Noah when your bodyguards caught him stalking and taking photos of me.¡± Noah was not straight with Serenity. All he said was that the photos were for Harriet, so thetter could mimic Serenity¡¯s mannerisms. It was not hard to guess that the Hunts were trying to get Harriet to y Serenity. Serenity and the Hunts were way past reconciliation. Now that Serenity became Mrs. York, the Hunts resented her for refusing them to ride on her coattails. On top of that, Serenity was the cause of their heavy financial losses. The n to have Harriet rece Serenity was so they got someone on the inside to benefit from as well as to get even with Serenity and Zachary. Zachary immediately called Josh and put Josh in charge of this. Serenity quietly stared at Zachary as Zachary got off the phone call. With a sparkle in his dark eyes, Zachary said tenderly, ¡°I got you, Seren. I won¡¯t let them get away with 1. it. ¡°Josh has a point. They would hold a grudge for losing everything they cared about, and they would only try to get even when backed into a corner. Now that they had nothing to lose, they would do anything in the name of revenge.¡± ¡°They¡¯re a pest and a nuisance.¡± Reaching out, Serenity caressed Zachary¡¯s face. ¡°Zachary. I want¡­¡± Zachary drew his face near, lifting his chin and narrowing his eyes as he puckered up for a kiss. Serenity smiled and met his lips as he wished. After a few exchanges of lingering breaths and hot smooches, Zachary whispered something raspy in her ear. While Serenity did not catch what he said, his intentions were clear to her. He was turned on, but it was the time of the month for her, so he had to deal with it. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯m not mad and won¡¯t make a fuss about you cing security around me behind my back.¡± Zachary kissed her and exined, ¡°They¡¯re not there to spy on you. I¡¯m just worried about your safety. You¡¯re my wife, and there are so many people after you now that your identity is out in the open. You can¡¯t stay in the house forever. I had to do it for your safety,¡± He would rather die than admit that he wanted to know her every move. ¡°I understand where you¡¯reing from. If it weren¡¯t for the bodyguards, we wouldn¡¯t have known what the Hunts were up to. Get more eyes on them. At least we¡¯ll have evidence when they get desperate andmit a crime. They¡¯ll only leave us alone once they¡¯re locked behind bars.¡± Zachary was a powerful man, but unlike thewless heroes in the books, he had his principles and drew the line somewhere. Serenity did not want her man to break thew because of these vile people. Chapter 974 Chapter 974 Chapter 974 Serenity and Zachary had to wait for the Hunts to make a reckless move andmit a crime before they could send them to jail. ¡°Do they have any vice?¡± ¡°They gamble. Almost all seniors in the town gamble. It¡¯s their favorite pastime after lunch. I don¡¯t know if my uncles gamble, but I guess they probably took up the habit.¡± Zachary¡¯s dark eyes shimmered as a n formed in his mind. Nevertheless, he kept mum about it and said to Serenity, ¡°Leave them to me. Don¡¯t waste your time on them. I¡¯ll be there for you through thick and thin. Just do what you want to do. ¡°Are you sure you don¡¯t want me toe along to the event tonight? We have never attended a party as a couple, honey.¡± Serenity looked askance at him. ¡°You¡¯re the great Mr. York. Your security detail will be all over you at social events. A lowly peasant like me can¡¯t possibly get close enough to see your face.¡± Zachary murmured, ¡°That¡¯s in the past¡­¡± There was once the couple turned up at the same event before and Serenity was there as her best friend¡¯s plus¨Cone. Zachary kept his identity hidden then. He noticed Serenity at the event, but she had no idea he was there. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°Wait until I have full confidence to stand by your side. Even if you don¡¯t want to, I¡¯ll make you go to events with me.¡± Getting on her feet, Serenity bent over and propped her arms by Zachary¡¯s sides.¡± Give me a kiss, handsome. I got to go.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°You¡¯re hitting on me again.¡± ¡°You¡¯re secretly happy every time I flirt with you.¡± Serenity bit his lip. ¡°Take care of yourself. You¡¯re on your own if you starve yourself again. If anything happens to you¡­ I¡¯ll inherit your assets and use your money to get me a boy toy. That would show you.¡± ¡°I might just rise from the dead.¡± Zachary got up and gave her a hug before lovingly uttering, ¡°Seren, I will watch my health so that I can grow old with you. All is good so long as you don¡¯t leave me.¡± Removing his hands frorn her body, Serenity brought up the packed food. ¡°Send Jim Chapter to collect dinner. It¡¯s time for you to get back to work. I¡¯m going back to the shop. Elisa might already be there waiting for me.¡± Zachary reluctantly walked with her out of the office. He saw her off at the building entrance, watching as she drove off. The security guards on duty exchanged nces. They wondered if things were looking good for Mr. York and his wife now. A few minutester, Zachary turned around and sauntered into the office building. A security guard took a bold move by observing Zachary¡¯s expression. Hmm. Judging by the smile on his face, he must be in a good mood. The couple had kissed and made up. The employees of York Corporation could finally be at ease. They could only hope that the couple would remain loving. The employees could not take another one of the couple¡¯s fights. The matter showed everybody who Serenity was to Zachary. She was one of a kind and irreceable. Serenity was the apple of Zachary¡¯s eye. He definitely made himself to be an uxorious husband. Chapter 975 Chapter 975 Chapter 975 Zachary did not bury himself in work right after returning to his office. Instead, he gave his mother a call. Since he was not the type to contact his mother unless necessary, Tania was on tenterhooks when she got the call from her eldest son. The way she saw it, her eldest son would only call her for huge matters. Hence, she was nervous and afraid, especially now that Zachary and Serenity had not gotten back together. As a mother and mother¨Cinw, Tania felt helpless about the situation. ¡°Zack.¡± Sensing the worry hidden in his mother¡¯s tone, Zachary answered in a rxed tone as a way to calm her nerves, ¡°Mom. Clive¡¯s wife is pregnant.¡± Tania was at first dumbstruck, but soon she came back in a lighter mood. ¡°It is news worth celebrating.¡± Alice¡¯s pregnancy had not been announced in the business world as the influential family was particr about the timing. The pregnancy would only be released to the public after the pregnant wife got through the first trimester. Since Alice was still early in her pregnancy, the news would only be kept to her closest families, the Lafayettes and Stones. It made sense that Serenity knew about the pregnancy since she was Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece. For Serenity to let Zachary know, it could only mean that the couple had reconciled. This was the reason Tania was delighted. It was not that she was happy for Alice. ¡°I¡¯ll prepare some supplements to give to the Stones.¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary thanked his mother. Tania said, ¡°Our family¡¯s rtionship with the Stones doesn¡¯t matter because Mrs. Stone is Serenity¡¯s aunt. We don¡¯t have to do anything if we don¡¯t know about Alice¡¯s pregnancy, but now that we do, we should be polite and send gifts. It¡¯s the least I can do to be respectful. ¡°When are you bringing Serenity home for dinner?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll bring her to the manor for a short stay when she has time.¡± Tania replied, ¡°Okay. Have a talk with her sister. We shouldn¡¯t leave her out for your wedding with Serenity. Make sure we observe all the traditions.¡± ¡°Got it, Mom.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you give me the address of your sister¨Cinw? I¡¯ll discuss your wedding preparations with her.¡± Zachary answered, ¡°My sister-inw is renting a ce now. ¡°I wanted to give her a house, but she and Serenity refused.¡± Tania fell silent for a while before saying, ¡°Your nana took a liking to Serenity likely because of Serenity¡¯s independence of making her own money.¡± She had no interest in the Yorks¡¯ fame and fortune. It was rare that Serenity and her sister were able to stay true to themselves against temptation in this materialistic world. Only, Serenity did note from a nice family. Her money¨Chungry rtives¡­ The Hunts made Tania sick. They were a vexatious family. Tania had never met anyone more ruthless and unreasonable. Talking about properties, Zachary¡¯s mind flew back to his Valentine¡¯s gift for Serenity. Serenity did not ept his gift in the end. Zachary thought about getting Jasmine to y the middle person, but Jasmine told him to do it himself. He wanted to transfer all his personal assets to Serenity, but Serenity turned down his gesture too. Nevertheless, she was willing to hold onto the important paperwork such as the title deeds only because he threatened to throw the stuff away. That was how she relented. Still, the ck card was given back to him. Chapter 976 Chapter 976 Chapter 976 Zachary could not even give Serenity one thing because she did not want anything. Serenity was a stubborn woman! Yet, Zachary loved her so! ¡°The etiquette lessons I talked to you and Serenity about¡­¡± ¡°Mom, she asked her aunt for help on this. She¡¯ll be going with her aunt to social events, starting tonight. With Mrs. Stone showing her the ropes, it will be quicker and more efficient than taking a ss on etiquette.¡± Tania replied, ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll keep out of this. I can bring her along to social events too, if she wants to.¡± As Serenity¡¯s mother¨Cinw, Tania had not spent much time with her. Besides, she believed Zachary was out of Serenity¡¯s league. Tania would only be critical and harsh if she was the one to bring Serenity into the high social circle, and the seemingly cordial rtionship between mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw would deteriorate. Tania understood why Serenity leaned toward seeking help from Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Stone was once a tough businesswoman. With Mrs. Stone taking Serenity under her wing, Tania trusted that Serenity would find herself in and around Zachary¡¯s circle. ¡°I¡¯ll make a note of everybody¡¯s birthdays, so our family has a reason to host a celebration. At least, Serenity can get practice runs at home.¡± Zachary uttered with a smile, ¡°You can discuss it with Nana and the other aunts. You His mother believed Serenity was not right for him. However, Tania did nothing to hurt Serenity, not even voicing her disapproval out loud. Compared to mothers who forcefully stepped into their children¡¯s rtionships, Zachary believed his mom was rather open¨Cminded. Tania got some work to do now. After a call with his mother, Zachary put everything into his work. He should earn more money and make his wife the richest woman in Wiltspoon. With a ck sedan pulled up far away, the person inside kept tabs on All You Can Eat diner. ¡°Do you see that fat woman? That¡¯s her, Hank¡¯s ex-wife, Liberty.¡± Jessica said to her brother as she pointed at Liberty¡¯s breakfast dinner. ¡°She took a huge cut of Hank¡¯s money after the divorce. That was why Hank couldn¡¯t fork out the 777,777 dors for Jack¡¯s and your home fenovation and new cars.¡± Oscar observed for a while before turning his attention to his sister. ¡°Jessica, tell me what you want me to do about it.¡± ¡°My mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw regret burning the bridge with her. It¡¯s a good thing that Hank¡¯s still on my side, but he often drops by to see their son, or so he said. I¡¯m not happy about it, but I¡¯m not pregnant. I don¡¯t have a kid of my own, so I don¡¯t have a reason to stop Hank from seeing his son. ¡°Find a few hooligans to stir trouble at her diner in turns once it is open for business. Nothing too extreme or to the point of assault. I just want her reputation and business ruined is all. Jessica reminded her brother, ¡°Her aunt is the missus of the Stone family who owns Stone Group. Her sister is married into the wealthiest family in the city. ¡°Just look for something that will put her out of business. I¡¯m just paying her back. the favor. Hank and I lost our jobs because of her. Jessica could take things up a notch, but she did not have the guts to do so. She was afraid of Zachary and the Stones¡® payback. ¡°Why should she be enjoying life when I¡¯m experiencing hell now? There can only be one winner between us, and it has to be me!¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. The thought that her inws favored Liberty got under Jessica¡¯s skin. She was the victor, and yet she had it rougher than Liberty. Reality did not sit well with Jessica. Chapter 977 Chapter 977 Chapter 977 Jessica¡¯s exnation only drove fear in Oscar. ¡°Jessica, she¡¯s well connected. It won¡¯t go unnoticed if we hired a few hooligans to stir trouble. Her rtives are wealthy and powerful. They¡¯re not people we can mess with. ¡°Did you say that her brother¨Cinw is the heir of the wealthiest York family? All the more reason to stay away from them. Don¡¯t you know how the Yorks are? We¡¯ve heard of the family even though we live in a rural area. Forget it. A hundred thousand dors isn¡¯t worth me taking the risk.¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Jessica winced her face. ¡°I¡¯m your sister, Oscar. So you¡¯re going to let it go when someone is making my life a living hell?¡± Oscar replied, ¡°How is she making your life a living hell? I mean, you lied to us. Hank had a wife and a son when he was with you, but you became his mistress and wrecked his family apart. You kept that fact from us. Here we were, thinking you found yourself a good man. ¡°Do you think I don¡¯t know you well? I bet you¡¯re the one picking on the Liberty girl. If nothing else, you were the homewrecker. You should feel ashamed of yourself instead of trying to get even with her. ¡°It¡¯s hard enough for a single mother to run a business, but you want to take away her only livelihood. I¡¯ll stick up for you if she bullied you, but did she though? ¡°The huge settlement she got out of the divorce is between her and Hank. The Brown family isn¡¯t to be med for Hank¡¯s refusal to give us over seven hundred thousand dors. You¡¯re only looking out for Hank, so you don¡¯t want to waste the money on me and Jack to fix our houses up and buy new cars. ¡°We doted on you for nothing. What did we get out of your marriage? Hank only gave a lot less than a hundred thousand dors for Mom and Dad¡¯s retirement. Jack and I got nothing. I would do anything you ask if you bought us a car and house.¡± At the end of the day, Oscar believed his sister gave him crumbs. Whatever he got from his sister was not worth the risk of offending the York and Stone families. At first, the Yateses were in the dark about Hank¡¯s wife and son. It was only after Hank divorced and talked about marriage with Jessica that the Yates family found out Jessica became a homewrecker. The Yateses were displeased about this as Hank was a divorcee while Jessica was young and had not been married before. Sure, Hank was only thirty¨Cone years old, but he was getting the better deal out of the bargain. Hank owned the house and car, and his house was worth millions. Since Hank was also on a million- dor annual ie, the Yateses made a huge demand, asking for 777,777 dors as a wedding gift. This was an astronomical amount to ask for in Wiltspoon, especially for a wedding that was not among the wealthy. Ordinary families would only ask for tens of thousands, if not thousands when it came to financial gifts. 777,777 dors was enough to scare any family from marriage. As Mrs. Brown put it to her daughter, Jessica was not made of gold. Besides, the Yateses were not returning wedding gifts of the same value. All the family intended to give were things like bedding, and the money they would get from the Browns were intended for the Yates brothers instead of the newly married couple. Of course, the Browns were unhappy with the gift exchange. It also rubbed Jessica the wrong way as it seemed like her family was selling her to get a better life themselves. Since her parents did not have her best interest at heart, Jessica went ahead and got married to Hank in secret. Now that everything was a done deal, her parents had no leverage to demand the money. ¡°It¡¯s not like you¡¯re incapable. You can earn the money to buy a house in the city. My husband and I are jobless now. We need money for the wedding, the reception, our home renovation, and whatnot. Money is an issue for us now.¡± Chapter 978 Chapter 978 Chapter 978 ¡°Weren¡¯t you and Jack the reason Mom and Dad asked for a lot of money? Ask any family, and none of them will tell you that they expect that much for a wedding gift. What would you think if your children¡¯s inws demand that much for a wedding too? ¡°That kind of money will be good for me to start a family with Hank. How can I possibly allow Hank to give it away? It¡¯s only for formalities¡® sake, but what did you tell Mom and Dad? 777,777 dors is lucky for you. All I get is seven thousand dors in return, and nothing more. ¡°Mom and Dad will get a hundred thousand dors while you and Jack get three hundred thousand each. Why? Why are they selling their daughter to give their sons everything? What about the daughter?¡± Faced with her sister¡¯s questioning, Oscar turned red in the face andshed out,¡± You¡¯re favoring outsiders instead of family. We¡¯re your brothers. You should get more out of the Browns since they¡¯re wealthy, but you can¡¯t get anything now because you¡¯re married. ¡°You went behind our backs and got married to Hank. Look, the 777,777¨Cdor gift is now seventy thousand. What¡¯s wrong with helping me and Jack out when you¡¯re getting a nice life in the city? It¡¯s normal for siblings to help one another.¡± ¡°Just because I¡¯m your sister doesn¡¯t mean I owe you. Why should I give you all the help when life is not even good for me? Why should I give you everything to renovate your houses? What about me? I don¡¯t even know if I have a bedroom, let alone a home, with Hank. Why should I suffer while you live the life? ¡°We¡¯re all Mom and Dad¡¯s children. Sure, I owe Mom and Dad my life, and I¡¯m not saying I won¡¯t help them out financially. You can give a little something to our parents too. Like you, I can contribute to theirAll content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. medical bills if they fall sick. ¡°I don¡¯t owe you and Jack anything!¡± ¡°You¡¯re not really part of the family anymore since you¡¯re taking Hank¡¯s family name. Do whatever you want. I don¡¯t have time for you.¡± Unable to win the argument, Oscar grimaced and opened the car door to walk away. Jessica was fuming too. With the five thousand dorsing to mind, she opened the car door and shouted at her brother¡¯s receding figure, ¡°Give me back the five thousand dors, Oscar!¡± He better cough up the money since he was not doing her bidding. Oscar took off running. Fat chance of him ever returning the money! He believed his sister would not cause a scene over five thousand dors. Jessica was not going to have a falling out with her brother over a small lump of cash. In fact, she wished she did not have a fight with her brother. How did the situation get out of hand? Nevertheless, her family¡¯s actions let her down every time she thought about it. Jessica saw no wrong in asking for a bit more financial help. She believed Hank would not value her if she married into the family without getting anything out of it. Chapter 979 Chapter 979 Chapter 979 Liberty married into the Browns without asking for anything. The wedding gift, be it material items or money, should be given ording to the current going rate and local traditions. Nevertheless, Jessica¡¯s parents demanded a lot to give to her brothers and left Jessica nothing to start her own family with. Jessica was not going to say yes to that. Now that Hank put her in control of the purse strings, Jessica was paying for everything their house needed. She felt the pinch every time she footed the bill. The responsibility fell on her to manage the household finances and everything was not cheap. As the head of the household, she started to get on top of their financial situation. Besides, she and Hank were still out of employment. They were eating away what little savings they had, so they had to be budget All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. conscious. Jessica was relieved she only contributed one¨Cthird of her past sry to her family. She spent another one¨Cthird and saved the remainder in the bank. At least, she had some savings of her own. It was all about self¨Clove. She had to love herself before she could love someone else. Jessica hopped out of the car, shut the door, and locked the car. She was driving Hank¡¯s car. Hank bought himself another vehicle. Of course, the car cost more than a hundred thousand dors. Hank talked about bing an uber driver if he was still jobless after the wedding. In short, he would still provide for his wife. Jessica believed Hank¡¯s feelings for her were genuine. At least, he treated her much better than he did Liberty. Drawing a few deep breaths, Jessica unlocked the car and retrieved her Louis Vuitton bag. Hank gave her the bag when they were dating. Hank said he had never bought anything expensive for Liberty, but Jessica deserved only the best. Jessica agreed to be his side chick because Hank was generous, young, and handsome. Clinging to her Louis Vuitton bag, Jessica took strides to All You Can Eat with her chin held high like a victor. Before she even came close to the diner, a car approached and pulled up in front of the diner. Jessica recognized the car. It belonged to her ridiculous sister-inw, Chelsea. Stopping in her tracks, Jessica decided against going in there for now. She wanted to see the reason Chelsea and her mother-inw came to look for Liberty. Liberty and Grandma May were discussing having a party for the diner¡¯s opening next week. Grandma May suggested having a party at the Wiltspoon Hotel since the Yorks owned the hotel. They could offer Liberty the best price, and better yet, for free. ¡°Grandma May, business is business. I want to have a party for the opening of my restaurant. You can¡¯t let me have the party for free, but a discount is always wee. Maybe I should just cook.¡± She was operating a breakfast ce, so she would be busy in the morning. She could close the restaurant by the time afternoon rolled around. Liberty had time to get groceries and cook. ¡°You¡¯ll overwork yourself. Why don¡¯t you reserve two tables at the hotel? I¡¯ll tell Kevin to give you the best price.¡± ¡°Thank you, Grandma May.¡± This time, Liberty graciously took up on Grandma May¡¯s offer. It would be hard for two families toe together if one party was overly cordial. ¡°Grandma.¡± Sonny was ying by himself in a corner when his grandmother and aunt entered the restaurant. He said hello to Mrs. Brown. ¡°Sonny.¡± Mrs. Brown looked at Sonny as if he was a money tree. She never really took the time to spend time with Sonny before. Now that they were apart, all Mrs. Brown thought about was her only grandson. Chapter 980 Chapter 980 Chapter 980 Mrs. Brown went to pick Sonny up and nted kisses on Sonny¡¯s cheeks, only giving it a rest when Sonny frowned. ¡°Sonny, I couldn¡¯t get you a toy since I came over in a rush. I¡¯ll give you some money, so you can ask your mom to take you out shopping. You can get whatever you want.¡± Mrs. Brown then pulled out a wad of cash and stuffed a few hundred¨Cdor bills in Sonny¡¯s hand. ¡°Mrs. Brown.¡± Liberty immediately stopped her and took her son from Mrs. Brown. Liberty uttered, ¡± Don¡¯t give Sonny money, Mrs. Brown. He¡¯s still young. He¡¯ll get into the habit of asking for money to buy things if you keep giving him money.¡± Mrs. Brown replied, ¡°Then you take the money. It¡¯s for Sonny to buy things.¡± She then handed Liberty the cash. Refusing it, Liberty answered, ¡°Mrs. Brown, Sonny has everything he needs. It¡¯s okay. You can keep the money for yourself.¡± Since Mrs. Brown often dropped by for chatter, Liberty learned that Hank gave a lot less allowance to his parents. Mrs. Brown mentioned that Jessica was stingy, cutting down on her parents¨Cinw¡¯s allowance now that she was holding the purse strings. Jessica moaned to Hank that her parents¨Cinw had a state pension and were at the age of receiving the pension. While the money was not a lot, the husband and wife got around five thousand dors from the government. Her parents¨Cinw did not have to spend their money since they were living with Hank, so Jessica refused to give a lot for their allowance. Jessica was concerned that her parents¨Cinw would give the money to her sister¨Cinw instead. ¡°I have money. Besides, this is for my grandson. Take it.¡± With Liberty rejecting the money from Mrs. Brown again, Grandma May jumped in. ¡± Liberty, this is a token gesture by Sonny¡¯s grandmother. You should take it. Sonny¡¯s grandmother never brought him any clothes before. You should take the money and buy some new clothes for Sonny.¡± Mrs. Brown made a face. Since Mrs. Brown knew what Grandma May was made of, she grimaced but said nothing and gave the money to Liberty. Jealousy was eating Chelsea up inside. Liberty¡¯s diner was looking great and neat after the renovation. The thought that Liberty was about to make money made Chelsea even more jealous. Chelsea had dreams to be a boss of her own too. Nevertheless, Jessica refused to lend her husband money to start a construction supply business. Chelsea was reluctant to fork out a few hundred thousand dors of her own money to set up a shop. She could earn the interest by keeping the money in the bank. On the other hand, there was a chance her husband¡¯s business might fail¡­ ¡°When is the grand opening of your diner, Liberty?¡± Chelsea asked with a forced smile. She now believed Liberty was a lot nicer than Jessica. ¡°Your health is more important than work, Liberty. Look at you. You lost a lot of weight. You had it easy with our family. You used to be skinny, but Hank provided for you well.¡± Everybody red at her. Chelsea smiled embarrassedly. ¡°I was just being honest.¡± Liberty curtly uttered, ¡°I¡¯m on a diet.¡± ¡°Why go on a diet? You looked better and jolly before. Stop losing weight. You¡¯re fine the way you are now.¡± It was not just Chelsea, but every member of the Brown family did not want Liberty to shed the pounds too because they knew Liberty would be desirable once she regained her appearance from back then. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only The Browns, except Hank himself, hoped Liberty would get back together with Hank. Hank would hold a senior position in York Corporation if they could rekindle their love and marriage. It was said that the annual ie of a senior executive at York Corporation was several million. The money was secondary. Most importantly, the Browns would be livingrge due to their ties with the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon. Chapter 981 Chapter 981 Chapter 981 ¡°Liberty, are you hiring at the moment? I don¡¯t have a job, and my age makes finding one a pain. I can¡¯t beat those young girls out there. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only ¡°You can hire me if you¡¯re looking to hire. I¡¯m not asking for a lot. I¡¯m happy with eight thousand dors a month with meals and amodation included.¡± Chelsea changed the subject. Echoing her daughter, Mrs. Brown told her former daughter-inw, ¡°Liberty, Chelsea has been out of work for a long time. It¡¯s going to be hard for you to run the ce and look after Sonny. You should hire someone to help you. Chelsea is not an outsider. Plus, she¡¯s a good worker. It¡¯s better for you to hire her than someone you don¡¯t know. You might end up with a thief for all you know. ¡°I can look after Sonny, so you can focus on running the business.¡± If Mrs. Brown was watching Sonny, Liberty would have to go to the Browns¡¯ home to pick the boy up, and she would bump into Hank. Liberty and Hank had known each other for more than a decade, and they had a son together, so sparks may reignite. Mrs. Brown could kick the Yate girl out when Hank had a change of heart to go back to Liberty. The Browns never had a quiet day since the prodigal and wretched girl married into the family. Jessica was useless in the kitchen, and Mrs. Brown could not tell Jessica off without making her cry. That was usually how Hank and his parents got into fights. With a long face, Liberty uttered, ¡°I¡¯m not hiring. I can¡¯t afford it.¡± A monthly sry of eight thousand dors? Liberty was only a small-time business owner. She would be lucky to break even and make a small profit, much less hire anybody. Even if she nned to bring someone on board, she could not afford that kind of sry. Besides, Liberty would never hire Chelsea. ¡°I can look after Sonny. He¡¯s attending kindergarten in September.¡± Liberty knew what Mrs. Brown was up to. The olddy was trying to use Sonny to get her and Hank back together. As if Liberty would remarry Hank. Liberty had been down that road before. She was not foolish. Why would she put herself through hell again? Sure, Liberty still had feelings for Hank before the divorce happened. However, the messy divorce killed whatever love she had left for the man. Now, Hank was dead to Liberty. She would rather be a single mother forever than take Hank back. The Browns were having second thoughts now because Liberty had a rich aunt, and her sister married into a wealthy family. The Browns were merely looking out for themselves just like the money-hungry Hunts. ¡°Why can¡¯t you afford to hire? It¡¯s not like you don¡¯t have the money. Hank gave you a lot for the divorce settlement. You don¡¯t need a lot to set up a restaurant. I bet you don¡¯t want to hire me. Liberty, no matter what, we were once family, you¡­¡± With her mother nudging her, Chelsea stopped short and left her words hanging. Chelsea was used to it. She was used to having her way with Liberty. Grandma May turned on her heel and went to the loo. Shutting the bathroom stall behind her, the old lady whipped out her phone and gave Zachary a call. Zachary soon took his nana¡¯s call. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Nana?¡± Grandma May could tell from Zachary¡¯s husky voice that he was in a good mood. Needless to say, Serenity had something to do with it. Such were the men of the York family. They only had eyes for the love of their life. They would give all their emotions to their beloved, and only their wives could trigger any emotions in them. ¡°Give me Duncan¡¯s number. I don¡¯t have his number saved. I need to talk to him about something urgent.¡± Chapter 982 Chapter 982 Chapter 982 ¡°You can talk to me about it, Nana. No need to look for Duncan.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t need you. Stop with the questions. Hurry up and give me Duncan¡¯s number.¡± Zachary skeptically gave his best friend¡¯s number to his nana. At the end of it, he persistently asked, ¡°What happened, Nana? Why do you need to talk to Duncan?¡± ¡°It¡¯s none of your business. Go back to work.¡± Grandma May immediately hung up on her darling grandson after getting Duncan¡¯s number. Over on the other side, Zachary was speechless. Could he not be a little nosy to ask about it? Grandma May dialed Duncan¡¯s number and spoke in an anxious tone when Duncan picked up, ¡°It¡¯s bad, Duncan! It¡¯s bad! Those absurd people are out to get Liberty again. It¡¯s Liberty¡¯s ex-mother-inw and sister-inw. They¡¯re jealous that Liberty set up a diner. They want Liberty to transfer the ownership of the restaurant to them. Liberty can¡¯t face those two women alone. She¡¯s no longer the two-hundred-pound woman she was. ¡°I¡¯m only an olddy. There¡¯s only so much I can help with. I couldn¡¯t scare them away by lying on the ground. I can only call you for help. Your office is the nearest to here. You can send a few security guards over.¡± Without giving Duncan a chance to speak, Grandma May terminated the call. ¡°I¡¯ll know what you¡¯re after if youe here in person, but I could be wrong about you if you send your security guards instead.¡± Clenching onto her phone, Grandma May exited the loo. There was no telling what the Brown mother and daughter said because Liberty appeared furious and was chasing them out. Grandma May nearly went to drag Mrs. Brown and Chelsea back. How was Duncan supposed to y the hero without the Browns around? Luckily, Grandma May could count on Mrs. Brown and Chelsea to stick around. They refused to leave like that. ¡°Liberty, Chelsea is in a tough spot. Hank doesn¡¯t have a lot of money since the wedding ising up. It¡¯s not like you spend a lot on yourself and Sonny. You have your sister to help you anyway. You have the money to lend Chelsea two hundred thousand dors to start a business. Don¡¯t worry. It¡¯s just a loan. She¡¯ll return the money. We¡¯re family after all.¡± The real reason Mrs. Brown and Chelsea were here was to get money from Liberty for George to start a business. With a straight face, Liberty clicked her tongue. ¡°Don¡¯t y the family card with me. My mom only gave birth to me and Seren. We¡¯re unrted. You should leave before I grab the broom.¡± Liberty should let her rtives deal with her former inws. It would be a battle between the nasties. ¡°No matter what, I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s aunt. Can¡¯t you look upon Sonny¡¯s sake¡­¡± ¡°You¡¯re Sonny¡¯s aunt, not mine. Sonny is living off his mother now, so using his name won¡¯t get you anywhere. Get out of here. Stoping over to harass me.¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Chelsea scowled. ¡°You can either lend me the money or give me a job. Otherwise, I¡¯m not leaving. You can¡¯t make me go!¡± She then walked to a table and took a seat. Liberty was annoyed. The nerve of these people! Grandma May watched without making a sound. Liberty removed Hank from her list of blocked contacts and gave Hank a call. She waited until he picked up before callously uttering, ¡°Hank, hurry up and take your mom and sister away. They came here to talk ill about you and Jessica again. I¡¯m getting sick and tired of listening to them.¡± Hank was at a loss for words. Did his mother and sister not go to Liberty to ask for money? How did it turn into badmouthing him and Jessica? Chapter 983 Chapter 983 Chapter 983 ¡°I¡¯ll be right there. I¡¯m sorry, Liberty.¡± Hank apologized on behalf of his mother and sister before ending the call. Picking up his car keys, he told his father, ¡°Dad, Mom and Chelsea made a fool of themselves at Liberty¡¯s diner again. Come with me to bring them back.¡± ck in the face, Mr. Brown took a moment to swallow the news and said, ¡°They have nothing better to do.¡± They had a nice thing going on as a family, and it had alle to an end. It took Hank to get a new wife for Mrs. Brown and Chelsea to appreciate Liberty. Now thedies would not stop harassing Liberty, and it was embarrassing. ¡°I¡¯ll take your mom back to our hometown after your wedding. We won¡¯te to the city unless necessary.¡± Mr. Brown believed taking his wife and daughter back home could give the newlyweds some space. The absence and distance would do them all some good. At least, the family would not be having fights every day. That way, his former daughter-inw would be left alone too. Hank¡¯s silence reflected his eptance of his father¡¯s decision. Liberty just got off the phone with her ex-husband when Duncan pushed open the ss door, all guns zing. He had a team of security behind him too. She was lost for words. What was going on? Grandma May thought to herself, ¡®Oh, my. A party came.¡¯ ¡°Kick these troublemaking women out!¡± Duncan entered and ordered the security guards to chase the mother and daughter out. Duncan tensed his scarred face and looked grimacing as he walked out of the restaurant and stood before the Browns, who were quaking in their boots. ¡°I own half themercial spaces on this street. Are you trying to disrespect me by giving my tenant problems? I¡¯m warning you. You¡¯ll be in serious trouble if you continue to give problems to my tenant. ¡°Get lost!¡± ¡°W-We¡­ We¡¯ll leave r-right now!¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Mrs. Brown was scared out of her pants. She grabbed her daughter and ran. The mother and daughter raced into the car and drove off. Jessica was watching everything from outside when Duncan came along with a security team. It was her cue to take cover in her car. Jessica secretly observed and even took a video to show Hankter. Liberty had gotten herself another man. Hank had be the past, so he should just forget about Liberty and focus on his life with Jessica. Once the mother and daughter were gone, Duncan returned to the diner while the security guards stayed put outside. However, it was rather striking to have a dozen men in uniform hanging around. Liberty¡¯s neighbors popped their heads out to see what was going on. These people did not know who Duncan was because Duncan hired someone else to collect the rent. They had no idea that the scarred face guy was their realndlord. Duncan looked at the wide-eyed Liberty and then at Grandma May who was watching keenly. He had the feeling that he had been fooled. After all, who was Grandma May? Sure, Grandma May was old, but she was fit enough to handle Mrs. Brown and Chelsea. Besides, Liberty was no pushover. She could team up with Grandma May to kick those two out. There was no need for Duncan to y the hero. Grandma May set him up. Realizing that he had been duped, Duncan kept calm on the surface and approached Sonny like nothing ever happened. He got on his knee and pulled Sonny toward him to give him a cuddle. Sonny did not take kindly toward Duncan¡¯s hugs, so he started putting up a fight. ¡°You must be scared, Sonny. Don¡¯t be scared. I¡¯m here to save you.¡± Liberty was speechless. Chapter 984 Chapter 984 Chapter 984 Grandma May was lost for words. Snapping out of her trance, Liberty asked, ¡°Mr. Lewis, h-how did you know they were here?¡± Duncan let go of the struggling boy. Despite giving Sonny many pinwheels, he still could not get through to the little man. Duncan believed he was a failure because he could never get the three-year- old to like him. ¡°Grandma May called me and said your former mother-inw and sister-inw were stirring trouble at your ce. She told me to hurry over with security, and I did because I was worried that they might scare Sonny and hurt Grandma May. ¡°Are you all alright?¡± Liberty was in a daze. No wonder Duncan showed up out of the blue. It turned out Grandma May called him for help. Well, Lewis & Co. was nearby after all. It made sense why Grandma May sought Duncan for help. Without thinking much of it, Liberty said, ¡°They have no shame, but I¡¯m not afraid of them. I was going to ssh them with water, but your arrival was perfect timing. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan replied, ¡°All that matters is that you¡¯re alright. You can chase them out if they drop by the next time. Don¡¯t waste your breath on them. You can¡¯t reason with these people.¡± Liberty could very well call the cops on Mrs. Brown and Chelsea if they vandalized the property. However, Mrs. Brown and Chelsea came to whine and borrow money. There was no reason for Liberty to call the authorities. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Grandma May, Liberty, I should go back to work. Call me if you need me. I¡¯ll let the person-in-charge know to tighten the security around here so this doesn¡¯t happen again.¡± Duncan came and went in a rush. He stayed for less than ten minutes. Liberty had no idea that Grandma May was putting out the feelers on Duncan. After Duncan left with his security team, she said to Grandma May, ¡°Mr. Lewis is such a nicendlord. I had my eye on this space not because of the high foot traffic, but because there are many offices including Lewis & Co. around. I should be able to make a living here. I¡¯m d I picked this ce to open a breakfast diner. ¡°It¡¯s not about profit for Mr. Lewis. At least, he cares for his tenants.¡± Grandma May snickered. Half the block belonged to Duncan. Yet, the other tenants had no clue who Duncan was, much less be under Duncan¡¯s protection. Grandma May knew that for a fact, but she did not say it out loud. Duncan and Liberty did not have the hots for each other yet. Grandma May intended to observe without giving her two cents. Duncan returned to his office and called his best friend toin. He said, ¡°What¡¯s your nana up to, Zachary? The olddy can fight. Heck, she still got it. She can handle the two women herself. Why did she need my help?¡± ¡°Can you exin further? I have no idea what you¡¯re talking about. Why did my nana call you? Who did you meet?¡± Zachary was confused. ¡°Your sister-inw¡¯s former mother-inw and sister-inw went to the diner to cause a scene. Your nana called me for help. Zachary, I have the feeling that your nana is possessed by my granny. I get this weird feeling when she looks at me.¡± Zachary finally got the whole story. His nana must have caught on to something and was trying to sound Duncan out. Zachary uttered nonchntly, ¡°You can send some of the men to help when Nana called. What? Did you ditch your work to help my sister-inw chase away two women?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not just me. I gathered a dozen of my office¡¯s security guards and headed there, all guns zing.¡± Having the scenario in mind. Zachary answered with a smile, ¡°That¡¯s a bit of an overkill, don¡¯t you think?¡± Chapter 985 Chapter 985 Chapter 985 Duncan replied nonplussed, ¡°What¡¯s your nana trying to do, Zachary? Does she think that I have feelings for Liberty? I honestly am fond of Sonny. That¡¯s all.¡± Zachary believed his best friend¡¯s eagerness to exin was a dead giveaway. His nana had a good eye for this kind of stuff. Nana would not put the feelers out to Duncan if Duncan was not interested in his sister-inw that way. In the past, Zachary noticed that fate tended to draw Duncan and Liberty together. Wiltspoon was a bustling major city. Yet, the pair kept bumping into each other. If that was not fate, then what was it? ¡°Hmmm¡­ I adore Sonny too. It¡¯s your business whether you like my sister-inw or not. It¡¯s not my problem either, but I hope you only take a liking to Sonny. I don¡¯t want you hanging around the diner because of Sonny¡¯s mother.¡± Since Duncan was Zachary¡¯s best friend, Zachary knew him well. Duncan would not make a good couple with his sister-inw, mainly because of Mrs. Lewis. Liberty was a divorcee. Mrs. Lewis would not take kindly to Liberty even if Liberty was single too. ¡°Of course, it¡¯s all for Sonny,¡± Duncan added. ¡°I¡¯m really fond of the child. Why do you all think I¡¯m interested in Liberty?¡± Even if he showed Liberty some concern, it was only because she was Sonny¡¯s mother. ¡°Zachary, tell your nana not to y matchmaker for me.¡± Zachary answered with a smile, ¡°Is my nana a cupid? You all seem afraid that she might set her sights on you guys. Don¡¯t worry. Nana has her tes filled with all her grandsons. She doesn¡¯t have time for her grandson¡¯s best friends yet. ¡°Mr. Young-Johnson asked me to hook Mr. Johnson up with some girl. Otherwise, I wouldn¡¯t meddle in his business. I mean, Nana got me the girl. That was why Mr. Young-Johnson sought help from Nana. I think Nana should open her own dating agency to introduce girls to all the eligible bachelors like you.¡± Grandma May would make it huge in that industry. If she could make it happen for an eligible bachelor in his thirties like Duncan, the Lewises would spare no expenses and reward Grandma May handsomely. Duncan fell silent before uttering, ¡°Grandma May is so young at heart. Her stunt today scared the hell out of me.¡± He dared not look Grandma May in the eye. He kept getting this strange feeling of guilt. ¡°Alright now. That¡¯s all I want to talk about. It¡¯s just to vent. Dinner tonight?¡± Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°No. My wife will be delivering me a packed dinner. I have had an upset tummytely, so she¡¯s taking care of my three meals. She¡¯s nursing me back to health.¡± Detecting the bragging in Zachary¡¯s tone, Duncan quietly ended the call. So what if Zachary had a wife? Duncan could marry a wife if he wanted to. Zachary was acting as if the rest of them could not get a wife. Zachary believed he had bragging rights since he had a wife. Before Jim delivered his dinner, Zachary left work at a little past four o¡¯clock. Surrounded by his team of security, Zachary arrived at Wiltspoon School. John¡¯s car was parked outside the shop. All four of his tires were t. Anyone who was dropping in the shop or passing by would notice the car. While John wanted to call a tow truck to remove his car, he could not get it done in broad daylight in case Serenity gave him a piece of her mind. He wanted to wait until her shop was closed before calling a tow truck and getting his tires changed. Elisa was there by the time Zachary arrived at the bookshop. ¡°You¡¯re here, Elisa.¡± Zachary felt a little less awkward with Elisa now that they broke the ice as cousins-in-w. Chapter 986 Chapter 986 Chapter 986 Zachary did not have mixed feelings about it. Sure, Elisa was younger than him by a few years, but she was Serenity¡¯s older cousin, so he should not be awkward about acknowledging Elisa as the older cousin-inw. ¡°Yeah, I came to pick Seren up. Did you skip work toe here?¡± Zachary replied in a husky voice, ¡°I left early after finishing my work. No one will say anything.¡± Elisa pursed her lips. Zachary was the boss of York Corporation, so whatever he said goes. No one would say anything even if he skipped out on work for a whole month, much less the asional early dismissals. ¡°Mr. York is a busy, busy man, but he has nothing to do when Seren is at stake,¡± Elisa teased. Zachary never had time to meet Elisa in the past. Now Elisa found out that it was not that he did not have the time-he simply was not interested in her. He would make time for Elisa no matter how busy Zachary was if he truly liked her. With that registering in her mind, Elisa saw the light. Zachary was a brilliant man, but she was no less a woman either. Only, she was not the woman for Zachary. It did not matter. There were a lot of fish in the sea anyway. One day, she would find the right fish for her. ¡°Where¡¯s Seren?¡± ¡°She said your stomach has been acting up recently, so she wanted to watch your nutrition intake. She made you an early dinner to deliver to youter, but you showed up here instead. At least she doesn¡¯t have to make the trip. Hang on. I¡¯ll call Seren over. Can¡¯t you bring a little something when you visit? I can¡¯t believe you came empty-handed. Where are your manners?¡± Zachary was speechless. Elisa found it amusing that she stumped Zachary. Only Serenity, who did not care about formalities, could get used to Zachary. Jasmine got up and went into the kitchen to take over as the cook, so Serenity could attend to Zachary. ¡°You¡¯re finished with work early, Zachary. I have the stew over the stove, but it should be ready soon.¡± With Serenity emerging from the kitchen, Zachary breathed a sigh of relief at the sight of his wife. Truth be told, Zachary felt the pressure to get along with Elisa. He was too proud to kiss up to Elisa. At the same time, Zachary did not want to be nasty to Elisa in case thetter would tell on him to Serenity. ¡°Seren, have a talk with Zachary. I¡¯ll get in the kitchen to see if I can help out.¡± Refusing to be the third wheel, Elisa nned to take cover in the kitchen. Prior to leaving, she leaned against Serenity¡¯s ear and whispered, ¡°Zachary really loves you. Stop putting up a front and cherish him. You¡¯ll be the happiest woman in Wiltspoon.¡± Since Zachary quit being awkward around her and acknowledged her as a cousin-in-w, Elisa was d to put in a good word for him. Elisa soon turned on her heel and offered her help in the kitchen. Though, an heiress like her could not be of much help. She took up some space in the kitchen while watching Jasmine and Mrs. Lane make dinner. Once Elisa was gone, Zachary nervously asked Serenity, ¡°What did she say to you? Is it something bad about me?¡± Serenity moved a chair over for him to sit down. She went behind the cash register to move her crafting tools aside, clearing the countertop. ¡°Elisa said that you¡¯re a brilliant man. She told me to cherish you. Apparently, I¡¯ll regret it if I pass up on you. Don¡¯t always assume the worst of Elisa. Honestly, she never said a bad thing about you to me.¡± Before the couple kissed and made up, Elisa had been advocating for Zachary. The way Elisa put it, Zachary must be an outstanding man since someone of high standards like her ogled over Zachary for years. Serenity could trust him for the rest of her life. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. As for Zachary¡¯s actions of withholding his identity, Elisa told Serenity to stay mad but only for a couple of days as Serenity would regret it someday for taking things too far. Chapter 987 Chapter 987 Chapter 987 Elisa found it a shame that she could not be the love of Zachary¡¯s life. However, she wasfortable with Zachary being her cousin-inw and wished Serenity nothing but happiness. Judging by the shimmer in his dark eyes, Zachary was taken by surprise. He thought Elisa would take the chance to discredit him in front of Serenity. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Poor Elisa. Zachary totally had her misjudged. ¡°Is the car outside with the t tires John¡¯s?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Pulling out his phone, Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll call the traffic police to tow the car. It¡¯s parked there, obstructing traffic.¡± ¡°He secretly came by twice to check on the car. I guess he¡¯s waiting until I¡¯m not around to get the tow truck toe around.¡± There was sarcasm in Serenity¡¯s tone.¡± He¡¯s acting like a thief.¡± ¡°That reminds me. I need to tell you that your cousin has made an appointment for surgery with a stic surgeon. What looks do you think she should go by?¡± Serenity wickedly uttered, ¡°She wants to resemble me and take my ce. Since she likes being someone else, she can go under the knife and look like my oldest cousin. She¡¯s Mike¡¯s sister, and she¡¯s married.¡± She wanted to see how her rtives would react when Harriet had all the hallmarks of Mike¡¯s sister. What would her oldest cousin and her husband do when they found out? It would turn the Hunt family upside down. ¡°What is your oldest cousin¡¯s name? I can let Josh know, so he can look into it. We can get the Harriet girl to look like Mike¡¯s sister if we get a picture of her face.¡± With Serenity revealing her oldest cousin¡¯s name to Zachary, Zachary immediately texted Josh. [Get that Harriet girl to look like this woman.] Josh replied with a voice note. ¡°Zachary, did you leave work early again?¡± Zachary spoke in a matter-of-factly manner, ¡°Yes, I left work early. Do you have a problem with that? I thought you all would be happy about it.¡± Josh was speechless. Everybody celebrated when Zachary was not in the office, but not Josh. He wanted to get off work early to spend time with Jasmine too. Of course, Josh was happy for Zachary that he managed to make peace with his wife. The storm was finally over. ¡°Are you free two dayster?¡± Serenity asked Zachary. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Zachary stared intently at Serenity. ¡°Tell me if you need anything at all. I¡¯m always free for you.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have work during the weekend. Come with me to my hometown. I¡¯m going to get bricks and gravel, one truck each, delivered to my parents¡¯ house. The trucks will be unloaded in front of my parents¡¯ home to put the word out that my sister and I areing back to renovate the house.¡± Before Zachary could say anything, Serenity added. ¡°Nana said that my granddad and rtives have been stalking them. These people have no shame and know no bounds. They think we¡¯re no threat to them now that they lost their businesses and jobs. ¡°Well, we¡¯ll start with my parents¡¯ home then. My sister and I talked it through, and we nned to take back our house after the new year. With the word out, I can guarantee that my granddad and the others will rush back. ¡°They can¡¯t get anything out of me. They probably won¡¯t let go of the house left behind by my parents. At least by us doing so, they will head back to our hometown. It¡¯s time to take this to the court since we¡¯re way past reconciliation.¡± The Hunts had crossed the line far too many times. Serenity had been figuring out a way to divert their attention elsewhere, and her parents¡¯ home came to mind. She decided to start with the house. It was high time she took the legal route anyway. Zachary¡¯s dark eyes glistened as he believed Serenity¡¯s n would work. It would also solve the issue with the house too. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll go with you to your hometown on the weekend. It¡¯s been a while since you visited your parents¡¯ grave. I can pay your parents¡¯ a visit with you and your sister this year too.¡± Chapter 988 Chapter 988 Chapter 988 The Hunts had moved the graves of Zachary¡¯s parents-inw elsewhere, and Serenity and her sister had no idea of the location. The Hunt family¡¯s intention was to stop the sisters from visiting the graves while pushing John to pay respects to Serenity¡¯s parents as their son. John could then inherit the property from Serenity¡¯s parents. The mention of her parents put Serenity in low spirits. Holding her hands, Zachary soothed Serenity, ¡°Your parents in heaven will be happy to see you and your sister doing well in life.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll take back everything that belongs to my parents!¡± ¡°You got me. Go and get them. I will hire the bestwyers to fight the case. We won¡¯t let them win!¡± Serenity gave a firm nod. ¡°Ahem.¡± Clearing her throat, Elisa interrupted the couple. Elisa drew close as the couple watched on. ¡°Seren, my mom called and told you toe home with me. We can start getting ourselves ready for the event.¡± She then turned to Zachary. ¡°Seren made you an early dinner. The food is ready now. Do you want to have it here, or have it to go?¡± Zachary looked at Serenity. He hoped Serenity could stay with him. ¡°Have dinner before you leave. I¡¯ll sit with you.¡± Serenity knew her man well. His appetite was better when she stuck around. She personally cooked him three meals a day to nurse him back to health. ¡°We usually won¡¯t eat much during the event, so we should have a little something before we go too.¡± Having found herself an excuse, Elisa set the table up and grabbed a cloth to wipe the table. ¡°You¡¯re going to your hometown on the weekend, Seren. Do you mind if my mom and I tag along? ¡°I want to see where Aunt Lisa used to live. I bet my mom would love to see that too. She has been wanting to check out your hometown and meet Aunt Lisa¡¯s adoptive parents.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. After her passing, Aunt Lisa¡¯s adoptive parents took away a chunk of the insurance money and stopped any contact with Serenity and Liberty. It was clear that they were cutting ties with Serenity and Liberty. However, it did not change the fact that they raised Aunt Lisa. Mrs. Stone wanted to know about her sister¡¯s childhood, and the only way of getting that information was through her sister¡¯s adoptive parents. No matter what, Mrs. Stone was grateful to her sister¡¯s adoptive parents. If it were not for them, her sister might not make it to adulthood and would not leave behind two nieces as a constion for Mrs. Stone who had been in search of her sister. ¡°Of course, I don¡¯t mind. Aunt Audrey mentioned that she wanted to go back to my hometown with me and visit my mom¡¯s grave¡­ I¡¯ve just been busy over the new year, so I haven¡¯t made it happen.¡± It was not too long after New Year¡¯s when she found out about Zachary. The fight between the couple became a cause of concern to the people around them. The ns to go back to the hometown had since been dyed. Elisa then said, ¡°I heard what you said to Zachary. It¡¯s best to solve the property issue as soon as possible. Always remember to ask us if you need anything.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I will be forting when I need help with anything.¡± Elisa scoffed and replied, ¡°That¡¯s what you always say, but you never include me in anything. You always charge ahead without me.¡± She could never forget the time Serenity brought a group to wreck Hank¡¯s home. Jasmine asked Serenity if Elisa shoulde along, but Serenity never bothered to mention it to her. Elisa missed out on the most exciting thing ever! Chapter 989 Chapter 989 Chapter 989 Serenity chuckled and went ahead to give Elisa a hug. She settled Elisa down, ¡°Don¡¯t be mad, Elisa. I won¡¯t let you miss out on the next fun.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t hold me. Your man is ring at me.¡± Nudging Serenity away, Elisa teased her before turning around to bring the food out of the kitchen. With Serenity looking at her man, Zachary answered in a stiff voice, ¡°Even if she¡¯s a woman, I mind that you hug her. You can hold me if you want to hold anyone.¡± Leaning in, Serenity quickly gave him a smooch on the face and pinched his cheek.¡± Alright, alright. I¡¯ll only cuddle with you from now on. Go and wash your hands. I have to get to my aunt¡¯s ce once you¡¯re well-fed.¡± Zachary whined like a man who was not getting any action. ¡°I have nothing to do, and yet you won¡¯t let me go with you. We have not attended an event together since we got married.¡± Serenity looked askance at him and asked, ¡°And whose fault is that?¡± Zachary shut up right away. It was his fault and his problem. They would have attended social meetings together as a couple a long time ago if he had not hidden his identity from her. Zachary would have her by his side for social and business events, unlike now where he was ditched at home while she worked the social mingling. Despite Zachary¡¯s resentment, he had to watch his wife get into Elisa¡¯s car and leave with the wind. s, he was left behind. Zachary stood outside the bookshop for a long time before saying, ¡°I get the feeling that I¡¯ve just been ditched by the missus, Mrs. Lane.¡± Standing not too far away, Mrs. Lane replied, ¡°Sir, everything the missus is doing now is for you. You should be happy.¡± Serenity was close to Mrs. Lane. After Zachary came clean about who he was, Sam gave it some thought and decided to let Mrs. Lane continue her employment with Serenity. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I don¡¯t mind it at all.¡± Zachary knew of his wife¡¯s concern, but her upbringing did not matter to him. To him, Serenity was good enough. So what if she came from a poor family? Everybody was poor once. Not everybody was born in a big city. ¡°But the missus cares about it. She¡¯s willing to learn and adapt to your circle because she loves you. The road ahead is long for you both, and it¡¯s not going to be easy. The missus wants to learn to stand by your side. ¡°We should give our full support to the missus.¡± It was not easy to be a wife to a wealthy family. There were pressure and responsibilities that came with being Mrs. York. The missus was motivated to learn for Mr. Zachary. With her trying to be apetent wife, it could only mean that the missus loved Mr. Zachary. Otherwise, who would be willing to change themselves for someone else? ¡°I¡¯m concerned that she might not get used to it. Thest thing I want is her asking for a divorce, quoting that we¡¯re notpatible.¡± Mrs. Lane replied, ¡°You should have faith in yourself and the missus, sir.¡± After a long silence, Zachary gave an affirmative answer and added, ¡°She can kill me if she wants to be free from me. The only way she can be single is when she bes a widow.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. It was a good thing the missus had left. Otherwise, Mr. Zachary¡¯s tyrannical words might start another fight. Zachary only left with his security detail once he had John¡¯s car towed away by traffic police. Back at the Stones¡¯ residence, Serenity finally put on a gown chosen by her picky aunt. Audrey personally selected Serenity¡¯s wardrobe. Chapter 990 Chapter 990 Chapter 990 Serenity thought she could just put on whatever. However, Audrey said they had to dress for the asion. Tonight¡¯s event was for the upper middle ss. Audrey initially had no intention of attending the social meeting, but since Serenity asked for a favor, she thought it would be perfect for Serenity to start off with. Hence, she told the host that she would be attending for Serenity to ease into the circle. Since it was not an event among the upper crust, there was no need to be overly dressy. Audrey did not pick out the fanciest gown for Serenity. Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had a slim figure and a great face. She carried herself with grace too. Any gown would bring out her natural beauty. With Serenitying out in the gown, Audreyplimented, ¡°Seren, you just have that refined air about you. You have a great figure that works nicely with the dress. It would be perfect if you don¡¯t walk too quickly.¡± Serenity was trained in the art of self-defense. Although she was endowed with natural beauty, she walked and carried out tasks like a boss. The way she walked was definitely faster than anydy could keep up. ¡°Aunt Audrey, I can stamp someone with these heels.¡± Since Serenity always had either sneakers or ts on, it was easy for her to move around. She was not used to wearing high heels. The most she would do was put on a pair of kitten heels whenever she attended social gatherings in the higher society with Jasmine and Mrs. Sox. She rarely ever wore high heels. ¡°I¡¯ll give you my full support if you go ahead with investing in some project or business with Elisa. It won¡¯t bother me that you take things fast, but tonight, you must be ady. Pace yourself. I could barely keep up with you when we went shopping the other day.¡± Rosiness crept onto Serenity¡¯s cheeks. Elisa brought out the killer stilettos for Serenity tonight. Intimidated by the stilettos, Serenity asked, ¡°Aunt Audrey, Elisa, I¡¯m scared I won¡¯t be able to walk in those heels. The heels are so high and thin. Will the heels break when I run?¡± Audrey was rendered speechless. Elisa remarked with a smile, ¡°No one is asking you to run in those heels.¡± Serenity stole a nce at her aunt¡¯s face before putting on the stilettos. Grabbing Elisa¡¯s hand, she stood up and took a few steps. She was tempted to kick the stilettos off her feet. Oh, how she longed for her house loafers. ¡°Wear these heels down the stairs and walk a few rounds on the frontwn. We can leave when you feelfortable in them.¡± Audrey was so focused on picking outfits and shoes for Serenity the other day that she forgot to let Serenity practice wearing the heels. Serenity quietly stuck her tongue out. Without defying Aunt Audrey¡¯s orders, she cautiously strutted out of the room. ¡°I¡¯ll go with Seren, Mom.¡± Taking pity on Serenity, Elisa merrily went with her cousin. Once out of the room, Elisa gave Serenity a sympathetic look as thetter clung to the barrister and walked. Elisamented, ¡°You asked for it. You could¡¯ve asked anyone for help, but you sought guidance from my mother. My mom is all about etiquette. She could probably work for the Queen. She probably will tell you to start over if you don¡¯t do a good job.¡± Serenity was lost for words. Who else could she look for, if not Aunt Audrey? If she were to go with Zachary, Zachary would dote on her so much and be cool with her leaving home in her loafers. ¡°It¡¯s still hours before the event anyway. You can take your time to practice.¡± Elisa added with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll be here with you.¡± Chapter 991 Chapter 991 Chapter 991 Going down to the first floor, Serenity walked extra carefully because she was worried the floor was slippery. Clive and Alice just came in from the outside. Alice was pregnant, so she went back to her maiden home for dinner, and Clive went to pick her up after work. The couple was stunned when they saw Serenity¡¯s cautious look. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Seren? Are your legs ufortable?¡± Alice asked with concern as she approached. Elisaughed. ¡°Look at her shoes, Alice. She¡¯s not used to wearing high heels, so Mom told her to walk outside in these shoes for a while so she can walk more naturally before we go.¡± Alice looked at the pair of stilettos on Serenity¡¯s feet, then at her face. She patted Serenity¡¯s shoulder with a smile and said, ¡°It¡¯s tough, but if you think of Mr. York, you can ovee everything.¡± Serenity had a long way to go. If she wanted to join Zachary¡¯s social circle, she had to work hard for it. Clive also walked over and nced at his cousin¡¯s legs but said nothing. ¡°I¡¯ll go outside to practice walking.¡± ¡°Go ahead but stay safe. You¡¯re still wearing your gown. Be careful not to stain it.¡± Alice reminded her with a smile. She was worried that Serenity would slip and fall. Serenity walked even more carefully. Elisa apanied her out of the house. As Serenity slowly adapted to the high heels, Elisa took a video and sent it to Zachary. Zachary silently removed Elisa from his cklist after learning that Serenity was Audrey¡¯s niece. He also took the chance when Serenity was sleeping to open up social media and stopped hiding her posts from Elisa. her Now, Zachary could receive the video sent to him by Elisa. Elisa added a message along with the video: [Zachary, Seren is working really hard for you. I hope you¡¯ll never let her down or lie to her for the rest of your lives.] Zachary replied: [All the love in my life belongs to Serenity alone.] Elisa remarked with a smile, ¡°No one is asking you to run in those heels.¡± Serenity stole a nce at her aunt¡¯s face before putting on the stilettos. Grabbing Elisa¡¯s hand, she stood up and took a few steps. She was tempted to kick the stilettos off her feet. Oh, how she longed for her house loafers. ¡°Wear these heels down the stairs and walk a few rounds on the frontwn. We can leave when you feelfortable in them.¡± Audrey was so focused on picking outfits and shoes for Serenity the other day that she forgot to let Serenity practice wearing the heels. Serenity quietly stuck her tongue out. Without defying Aunt Audrey¡¯s orders, she cautiously strutted out of the room. ¡°I¡¯ll go with Seren, Mom.¡± Taking pity on Serenity, Elisa merrily went with her cousin. Once out of the room, Elisa gave Serenity a sympathetic look as thetter clung to R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only the barrister and walked. Elisamented, ¡°You asked for it. You could¡¯ve asked anyone for help, but you sought guidance from my mother. My mom is all about etiquette. She could probably work for the Queen. She probably will tell you to start over if you don¡¯t do a good job.¡± Serenity was lost for words. Who else could she look for, if not Aunt Audrey? If she were to go with Zachary, Zachary would dote on her so much and be cool with her leaving home in her loafers. ¡°It¡¯s still hours before the event anyway. You can take your time to practice.¡± Elisa added with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll be here with you.¡± Going down to the first floor, Serenity walked extra carefully because she was worried the floor was slippery. Clive and Alice just came in from the outside. Alice was pregnant, so she went back to her maiden home for dinner, and Clive went to pick her up after work. The couple was stunned when they saw Serenity¡¯s cautious look. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Seren? Are your legs ufortable?¡± Alice asked with concern as she approached. Elisaughed. ¡°Look at her shoes, Alice. She¡¯s not used to wearing high heels, so Mom told her to walk outside in these shoes for a while so she can walk more naturally before we go.¡± Alice looked at the pair of stilettos on Serenity¡¯s feet, then at her face. She patted Serenity¡¯s shoulder with a smile and said, ¡°It¡¯s tough, but if you think of Mr. York, you can ovee everything.¡± Serenity had a long way to go. If she wanted to join Zachary¡¯s social circle, she had to work hard for it. Clive also walked over and nced at his cousin¡¯s legs but said nothing. ¡°I¡¯ll go outside to practice walking.¡± ¡°Go ahead but stay safe. You¡¯re still wearing your gown. Be careful not to stain it.¡± Alice reminded her with a smile. She was worried that Serenity would slip and fall. Serenity walked even more carefully. Elisa apanied her out of the house. As Serenity slowly adapted to the high heels, Elisa took a video and sent it to Zachary. Zachary silently removed Elisa from his cklist after learning that Serenity was Audrey¡¯s niece. He also took the chance when Serenity was sleeping to open up her social media and stopped hiding her posts from Elisa. Now, Zachary could receive the video sent to him by Elisa. Elisa added a message along with the video: [Zachary, Seren is working really hard for you. I hope you¡¯ll never let her down or lie to her for the rest of your lives.] Zachary replied: [All the love in my life belongs to Serenity alone.] Elisa stared at the message for a long time but did not reply. She apanied Serenity in the yard so thetter could walk naturally. After wobbling to the gate of the vi, Elisa suddenly realized that several luxury cars were parked at the gate of therge vi next door. Her old neighbors had moved away more than a decade ago, and they sold the vi to pay off their debts. Elisa wanted her mother to buy the neighboring vi and connect it with their own vi, but when her mother contacted the old neighbors, they told her that the vi had been sold. The mother and daughter were toote. Clive was the first to know, but even he was too slow to act. Elisa had grumbled to her mother, ¡°Who snatched it up so quickly? I can¡¯t believe that person was quicker than our family.¡± Seeing so many luxury cars parked there at the moment, Elisa guessed that her new neighbor had come to see the house. Since the vi was bought, the other party would definitely renovate it and have its design changed. ¡°What are you looking at, Elisa?¡± Serenity leaned in and asked curiously. ¡°Thatrge vi was recently sold, so I wanted to know who bought it. My family wanted to buy it, but we were one step toote. That person was quick. If they have so much money, why didn¡¯t they buy a new vi or buynd to build a vi themselves?¡± Elisa felt regretful that she did not manage to buy the neighboring vi. ¡°Wiltspoon is alreadypletely developed. It¡¯s hard to buy goodnd to build your own vi, and the small vis in other neighborhoods can¡¯t bepared torge vis like the one you¡¯re living in.¡± Chapter 992 Chapter 992 Chapter 992 All the vis in this area wererge units. They were most likely built by wealthy people who seized the chance to get a good section ofnd in Wiltspoon when it had just started developing. Rich people who could not buy a good section of thend but wanted to live inrger vis usually bought a few small vis, then connected and renovated them into one.rge vi. Elisa was silent, then said, ¡°That¡¯s true. That¡¯s why many people wanted to buy that vi when word got out that my neighbor wanted to sell it.¡± A group of people came out of the vi. ¡°It¡¯s him!¡± Elisa was sharp-eyed and recognized at a nce that the person who came out while being nked by several men in ck was Remy. Serenity looked over again before finally remembering. ¡°Isn¡¯t that Mr. Johnson from Annenburg?¡± ¡°He already has a house in Wiltspoon. Why did he buy another? He even spent so much money to buy my neighbor¡¯s vi. Most importantly, he was quicker than us and bought the vi before we could.¡± Elisa muttered, ¡°Does he n to settle down in Wiltspoon?¡± Remy was only responsible for FC & Co.¡¯s business in Wiltspoon and would often return to Annenburg where his home was. He had a house in Wiltspoon, but it was just a vi. He did not buy any other real estate. However, that was normal. After all, he was from Annenburg and would return to that city. Elisa was grumbling because Remy suddenly bought arge vi spanning more than an acre. Serenity said, ¡°Isn¡¯t it normal for rich people like them to have many properties under their name? My husband gave me a whole bunch of keys and property deeds for me to keep.¡± She did not ept when Zachary wanted to give her all his property, so she did not count how many property deeds he had. In any case, it was a whole stack of papers. The multiple keyrings with all the house keys were enough to make a small hill. Elisa paused. ¡°You¡¯re right¡­¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Remy came out of therge vi and was just about to get into the car to leave when a bodyguard whispered something to him. He turned around and saw Elisa and Serenity. After a slight hesitation, he came up to the twodies. Since Remy walked over, Elisa opened the vi¡¯s door and watched him approach with a smile. ¡°We meet again, Mr. Johnson.¡± Remy smiled back. ¡°Yes, we meet again.¡± He nodded in greeting toward Serenity. ¡°Hello, Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Mr. Johnson,¡± Serenity greeted him. Elisa asked, ¡°Did you buy that vi, Mr. Johnson?¡± ¡°Yes, I did.¡¯ ¡°You¡¯re very well informed. We¡¯ve been neighbors with the Zimmers for more than ten years, so we thought we were the first ones to receive the news, but when our family tried to buy the vi from them, we were told that it was already sold. I was wondering who bought it, though I didn¡¯t expect it to be you.¡± Remyughed and said, ¡°I bought Zimmer Corp. After finding out that Mr. Zimmer wanted to sell his vi to pay off his debt, I came back with him to take a look and decided to buy it. Now that you¡¯ve said that, I¡¯m d I acted quickly. If I had hesitated, the vi would have fallen in your hands instead.¡± Elisa grinned. ¡°We¡¯re neighbors from now on. You¡¯ll be renovating the vi, right?¡± ¡°Yes, I will. I¡¯m not a fan of the current interior design, so I¡¯ll hire a designer toe over and make new ns for theyout.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t think you would want to redecorate.¡± Remy said, ¡°There¡¯s nothing wrong with redecorating a house you just bought.¡± Chapter 993 Chapter 993 Chapter 993 Remy¡¯s eyes looked deeply at Elisa, and he said, ¡°Buying a house is an important matter and has to be taken seriously. I spent a lot of money buying the vi, so of course I have to change it to fit my tastes. I¡¯ll only be able to livefortably here if I like the design.¡± Elisa remembered that her family also hired a famous interior designer toe over and tailor the vi ording to their tastes. Thus, her family lived here happily over the years. She said in understanding, ¡°You¡¯re right. Since we¡¯ll be neighbors in the future, why don¡¯t youe in for a cup of tea?¡± Remy did not refuse Elisa¡¯s offer and followed her and Serenity into the house. Clive and his wife were still sitting on the sofa in the living hall. Audrey was there too, concernedly asking her daughter-inw about something. When she heard the sound of her daughter talking with an unfamiliar man, she looked at the door and saw her daughter and niece inviting a young man inside. Clive saw Remy and stood up. He took a few steps forward and greeted Remy with a smile, saying, ¡°The wind must be quite strong today to have blown you all the way here, Mr. Johnson.¡± Remyughed. ¡°Yes, only very strong winds can move me.¡± The two men knew each other but were not exactly friends. FC & Co. were partners with York Corporation, so Remy, Zachary, and Josh were good friends in real life as well as in business. However, York Corporation and Stone Group were at odds with each other, so Remy and Clive were just nodding acquaintances. They were not close. Audrey heard of Remy and had met him once before, but only from afar. They never spoke face-to- face, so she could not recognize him at first. It was only after hearing her son¡¯s greetings did she realize who Remy was. ¡°Hello, Mrs. Stone.¡± Remy greeted Audrey politely when Clive and Elisa invited him to sit down. Audrey smiled and asked him to have a seat. ¡°Sorry for disturbing you.¡± Audreyughed. ¡°It¡¯s no trouble.¡± ¡°Mr. Johnson was the one who bought the Zimmers¡¯ vi. He¡¯ll be our new neighbor from now on.¡± Audrey and Clive were surprised to hear that. Clive smiled and said, ¡°So it was you, Mr. Johnson. You¡¯re better informed than we are.¡± He heard that the special assistant of FC & Co. was like Josh, who specialized in collecting information. Remy was the ideal son-inw candidate for the Houston family, which was simr to the Bucham family. ¡°I bought Mr. Zimmer¡¯spany,¡± Remy said. Clive was struck by a realization. No wonder Remy moved faster than the Stone family-it was because he bought the Zimmers¡¯ company. The maid served pastries and tea. Remy politely took a sip and put down the teacup. He did not touch the pastries. Serenity was observant and realized that Remy was like Zachary. They both did not like sweets. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Remy did not stay for long. He only came in to greet the others when Elisa invited him in. After all, they would be neighbors in the future. They would be living very close to each other. He declined the Stones¡¯ offer for him to stay for dinner and got up to leave. Elisa took the initiative to see him off. Chapter 994 Chapter 994 Chapter 994 ¡°Mom, Clive, do you feel that Elisa and Mr. Johnson are familiar with each other?¡± Alice spoke a little earlier. She was just listening and observing. Her little sister-inw was proud and arrogant, and very few men were able to catch her attention. She was infatuated with Zachary for many years to the point where her eyes and heart were filled with him. It was Alice¡¯s first time seeing Elisa treat a man who was not Zachary so well. Serenity exined, ¡°Elisa and Mr. Johnson met several times. She said that the first time they met was on the road. She blocked his way, but he gave way out of courtesy.¡± Audrey said faintly, ¡°Mr. Johnson is an exceptional man. The men from his family are as good as the men from the York family. They just live too far away.¡± Everyone fell silent. Serenity also thought about whether Elisa and Remy would be a couple. Then, she remembered that Remy lived in Annenburg. Audrey only had one daughter and could not bear to let Elisa marry somewhere far. She stopped thinking about it. If a spark ignited between Elisa and Remy, they would ovee their problems by themselves. Compared to what Zachary and she faced, what Elisa and Remy had to deal with could not be considered problems. Remy suddenly spent a fortune to buy the house next to the Stone family¡¯s vi and went from being miles away to bing neighbors. Now, they were just separated by a wall. After seeing Remy off, Elisa went back to her house and said, ¡°Mom, Seren can walk naturally now. Let¡¯s go.¡± Audrey asked Serenity to get up and take a few steps to show her. After making sure that Serenity was able to walk naturally, she stood up. Alice followed suit, picked up the delicate clutch from the side, and handed it to her mother-inw. ¡°Have a good rest at home, Alice. Although you¡¯re still in the early stages of pregnancy and your movements aren¡¯t affected yet, you still have to be careful. Rest well and let Clive stay with you. I¡¯ll bring Elisa and Seren out now.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡¯ll take care, Mom. Have fun.¡± Alice winked at Serenity and Elisa but regained her gentle expression when her mother-inw looked at her. With her husband, she personally sent thedies out the door. The banquet tonight was hosted by the Dowlings. It was the eighteenth birthday of the family¡¯s eldest daughter, so they were celebrating with a birthday banquet. On the way there, Audrey asked Serenity questions about the Dowling family. She was satisfied when Serenity managed to answer everything perfectly. ¡°Seren, your memory is much better than Elisa¡¯s. She doesn¡¯t remember anyone she meets.¡± ¡°That¡¯s because I can¡¯t be bothered to remember. Why should I remember people I don¡¯t get along with?¡± Audrey reached out to poke her daughter¡¯s forehead. ¡°See, that¡¯s exactly what I meant. You won¡¯t be able to get married if you don¡¯t change that temper of yours.¡± ¡°If can¡¯t get married, I¡¯ll stay with you and dad for the rest of my life.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Elisa is fine the way she is. I like her character very much.¡± Elisa did not need to be smooth and slick. With the amount of confidence she had, she did not have to try currying favor with other people. ¡°You two¡­ I can¡¯t be bothered to nag you.¡± Audrey said the words of admonishment with a smile on her face. She was happier than anyone else that her only daughter could get along with her niece. ¡°Aunt Audrey, I¡¯ll be going back home this weekend.¡± Audrey did not ask why Serenity was going back and simply said, ¡°Wait for me. I¡¯ll go over there with your Uncle Darrell.¡± ¡°Okay. Zachary and I will probably leave after breakfast. I have to buy truckloads of bricks and gravel and travel tomorrow to bring them back. I¡¯ll tell them that I want to renovate my parents¡¯ house or rebuild it.¡± Audrey was an intelligent person and knew that Serenity was officially dering war on her grandparents. Her fight for her parents¡¯ inheritance had just begun. Chapter 995 Chapter 995 Chapter 995 It was fine for Old Mr. Hunt and his wife to live in Serenity¡¯s house, but they wanted to give John the house left behind to the sisters by their parents. That was why Serenity and her sister decided to go to court. The house was built by their parents, and the name on thend deed was their father¡¯s name. ording to inheritancew, John had no right to inherit the house. The two sisters were still alive! ¡°Do you know where to buy bricks and gravel?¡± Audrey asked with concern. ¡°I got in touch with Ms. Deli thest time I went back. I called her to ask. Her family just rebuilt their housest year, so I got the number of a contractor who transports bricks for her. I can get a truckload of bricks sent to me this weekend itself.¡± Serenity always thought of getting her parents¡¯ house back. In the past, her sister and she did not have the ability. Now that they did, they naturally wanted to take action. At first, the sisters thought that if their grandparents wanted to live in the house, they would let them stay there until they passed away in their old age. Then, the sisters would take over the house and leave it to their children and grandchildren. However, they were too naive. When their grandparents drove them away, the old couple had already made preparations to take over the house and pass it on to their own children and grandchildren. That year, her granddad drove the sisters out while screaming, ¡°Your father is my son. Since my son died, it¡¯s only natural that everything he left behind belongs to me, his father. It¡¯s his final way to show respect to me as my son. ¡°If you two were boys, I would raise you no matter how tiring it was and leave your father¡¯s house to you, but you¡¯re just girls. Don¡¯t even think of inheriting my son¡¯s house! ¡°What¡¯s the use of girls? Girls will just marry into another family when they grow up. How can I let outsiders inherit the house that my son worked so hard to build?¡± In the old man¡¯s heart, daughters had no stake in the family property. Scott only gave birth to two daughters and no sons. Thus, after his death, the house should be given to his nephew to inherit. At least then, the house would still belong to the Hunt family instead of outsiders. Serenity remembered clearly what her granddad had said. ¡°Go take the family property of your inws if you¡¯re capable. You sisters have nothing to do with the Hunts¡¯ property, so don¡¯t even think about it.¡± There were indeed unwritten rules in the countryside, where rural houses would be left to the son. If the family was well-off and loved their daughter, they could buy a house for their daughter outside. Families who did not give birth to sons either made their son-inw marry into the family or gave the house to a nephew instead. In the past, families with only daughter¡¯s usually passed down the house over to a nephew, but times were different now, and people¡¯s thinking was evolving. Even if there was no son in the family, they could still leave the family property to their daughters. People who did not share the sentiment would echo what the older generation say and pass on the property to their nephews, hoping that their nephews would take care of them in their old age. Serenity thought that those old-fashioned thoughts were dumb. If those parents could not even depend on their own daughters, how could they depend on their nephews? Their nephews had parents of their own, and they would have wives and children too. They might have difficulty in supporting their own parents. How would they take into ount their uncles? Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. The sisters were going back to fight for the property left behind by their parents. They were also dering war on the old-fashioned way of thinking and fighting for all the other daughters out there! ¡°Okay, it¡¯s fine if you¡¯ve arranged everything. If you need help, then tell me and I¡¯ll find out for you,¡± Audrey said. Then, after thinking of Zachary, she added, ¡°But with Zachary with you, I don¡¯t have to worry.¡± At the mention of Zachary, Serenity could not help but send him a message and ask what he was doing. He quickly replied to her: [I¡¯m missing you.] Serenity was speechless. She could not suppress her smile, but she did not dare tough aloud. [We¡¯re on our way to the Dowlings¡¯ house now.] Chapter 996 Chapter 996 Chapter 996 Zachary: [Sote? Did you manage to walk in the stilettos?] Serenity was stunned and asked: [How did you know I was wearing stilettos?] She was wearing ts when she left the bookstore. Zachary replied honestly: [Elisa took a video of you walking and sent it to me. Thank you, Seren. You¡¯re really working hard.] [Thank you for willing to try to fit into my circle for my sake.] Serenity was aid-back person and usually dressed forfort. However, she was changing for him. The hardships she had to face broke his heart, yet he was grateful for it. He vowed to spoil her for the rest of his life. Serenity: [So Elisa betrayed me. I must have looked funny walking in heels. I keep wanting to throw them away. Sandals are way morefortable.] The people in Wiltspoon usually walked around in sandals. [We met Mr. Johnson and invited him to sit down, so we left a littleter.] Serenity answered her husband¡¯s earlier question. Zachary was a little surprised and asked: [How did you meet Mr. Johnson?] Serenity: [He bought therge vi next to Aunt Audrey¡¯s house. We bumped into him while he brought an interior designer to look at the house, so Elisa invited him in for tea. After all, they¡¯ll be neighbors in the future.] The couplemunicated through text, so Serenity boldly told her husband her spection. [Zachary, I think Mr. Johnson bought the Zimmers¡¯ vi because he wants to be neighbors with Elisa.] When her hand was injured and Elisa apanied her to the hospital for an IV drip, Remy was there too because of a bad stomach. Remy had been cradling his stomach weakly, but the moment he saw Elisa, he immediately straightened up, raised his head, and pretended to be fine. It was because he did not want Elisa to see him so listless. He cared about what Elisa thought of him. Back then, Serenity already thought Remy was interested in Elisa. However, Elisa had just given up on Zachary, so she did not dare ask questions and simply watched silently from the side. Now, Remy bought the Zimmers¡¯ vi and became neighbors with the Stones. Serenity could not help but specte that it was because Remy was preparing for the future. Since they would be living in close proximity, there would be more chances to get closer still. Zachary was not interested in who Elisa ended up with as long as she stopped pestering him. He replied to his beloved wife: [Remy is a good man.] ¡°Seren, who are you texting? Your phone is vibrating nonstop.¡±Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Elisa suddenly leaned over, and Serenity quickly said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I¡¯m just chatting with Zachary and asking what he was doing.¡± Hearing that Serenity was messaging Zachary, Elisa sat upright and teased, ¡°You two just made up, and you¡¯re already showing off your love in front of us. You¡¯ll make us jealous if you keep acting all lovey-dovey.¡± Audrey and Serenity said in unison, ¡°If you¡¯re jealous, then hurry up and find a boyfriend.¡± Elisa was speechless. She forgot that her mother was also in the car. Chapter 997 Chapter 997 Chapter 997 When they arrived at the Dowlings¡¯ home, the entrance of the vi was open. Thergewn in front of the house was beautifully decorated, and there were many guests holding tall sses and chitchatting in groups. With Audrey¡¯s status, the Dowling family was notified the moment her car appeared in front of the vi. Mr. and Mrs. Dowling immediately brought their children over to give their greetings. When the car was parked at a spot designated by the servant, Mr. Dowling approached with his wife and children. He personally opened the car door for Audrey and said with a smile, ¡°Mrs. Stone.¡± Audrey got out of the car with grace. ¡°Mr. Dowling,¡± she responded with a smile. Mrs. Dowling greeted Audrey with her son and daughters. The Dowling family had two daughters and one son. The youngest was their son, who was only eight years old this year. He was chubby and fair but was courteous and greeted Audrey politely ording to how his mother taught him. Elisa and Serenity got out of the car and walked over to Audrey¡¯s sides, nking her like a pair of sisters. Elisa was famous in the high society of Wiltspoon not only for her temper but also because she was the only one who dared to openly confess her love for Zachary and pursue him. In fact, Zachary had many admirers, but none of them had Elisa¡¯s courage. ¡°Ms. Stone, you get prettier every time I see you,¡± Mrs. Dowlingplimented Elisa. She was aware that Audrey loved her only daughter the most, so praising Elisa had the same effect as pleasing Audrey. Sure enough, Audrey¡¯s smile brightened up. ¡°Your two daughters are also very lovely, Mrs. Dowling. They took the best of your husband¡¯s and your features. I remember thest time I saw your eldest daughter. She was still a little girl in pigtails. Now, she has be a youngdy in the blink of an eye. You¡¯re very blessed, Mrs. Dowling.¡± Maya, the eldest daughter of the Dowlings, blushed at thepliment. ¡®Who is this, Mrs. Stone? She looks familiar.¡± Mrs. Dowling looked at Serenity and felt that she had seen the youngdy before, but she could not remember from where. Audrey introduced Serenity with a smile, ¡°This is my niece, Serenity Hunt. She happened to be out of Wiltspoon due to an urgent matter thest time my family held a banquet, so I couldn¡¯t introduce her to everyone.¡± Serenity Hunt? Mr. and Mrs. Dowling were both shocked. It was the missus of the York family! After Zachary¡¯s interview, everyone in Wiltspoon knew that his wife¡¯s name was Serenity Hunt. However, her photo was not published, so people could not put a face to the name. Some remembered the news about her that went viral a while back and tried finding it again, but all the photos had been deleted. Besides, the photos on the post back then were from more than ten years ago when Serenity was still a little girl. Women change a lot after growing up, so the current Serenity looked different from how she did in her childhood. ¡°Mrs. York, it¡¯s an honor to meet you.¡± The smile on Mr. Dowling¡¯s face grew bigger as he extended his right hand to shake hands with SerenityMaterial ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 998 Chapter 998 Chapter 998 ¡°Sorry for imposing, Mr. Dowling.1 After all, Mrs. Dowling did not send her an invitation. She came here because her aunt brought her. Mrs. Dowling smiled. ¡°Nonsense, you¡¯re not imposing. It¡¯s our honor to have you here, Mrs. York.¡± Serenity was holding the birthday gift that Audrey had prepared for Maya. She handed the gift to Audrey, who took it and then passed it to Maya. She said with a smile, ¡°Happy birthday, Ms. Dowling.¡± Mrs. Dowling quickly said, ¡°Just call her Maya, Mrs. Stone. We¡¯re very happy that you came to Maya¡¯s birthday party. You didn¡¯t have to get her a gift.¡± She gestured for her daughter to ept the present. The gift was a set of jewelry. Maya took the birthday present and thanked Audrey. Since Audrey only brought her daughter and niece and did not bring her husband, Mr. Dowling asked his wife to apany them with her two Text ? owned by N?velDrama.Org. daughters while he went to entertain the other guests. Mrs. Dowling warmly weed Audrey and the two cousins into the house. As they walked, everyone saw how respect was mixed with Mrs. Dowling¡¯s enthusiasm. In fact, it seemed that Mrs. Dowling was especially respectful to a young woman standing beside Audrey. Many people said that Serenity was not worthy of Zachary, but Mrs. Dowling thought differently. Whether or not Serenity was worthy of Zachary, she was already Zachary¡¯s legal wife and the missus of the York family. Zachary only exposed Serenity¡¯s identity as his wife because he doted on her. Serenity was able to be Zachary¡¯s beloved woman, so her status as Mrs. York was firm as a mountain. The elders of the York family had always been known for being open- minded. When they heard that Serenity was chosen by Old Mrs. York, no one would dare disrespect Serenity even if she was a beggar. Therefore, Mrs. Dowling did not dare to underestimate Serenity or disrespect her. Serenity was the missus of the York family and was the wife of the future head of the family. She was the most respectable woman in Wiltspoon. Mrs. Dowling did not try to build a friendship with Serenity since they had an age gap. She only hoped that she could make a favorable impression in front of Serenity. Furthermore, it was good for her eldest daughter that Serenity showed up for her birthday banquet. The prestige the Dowlings earned would be helpful for them for a long time. ¡®There are two youngdies beside Mrs. Stone. One of them is Ms. Stone, but who¡¯s the other one? Mrs. Dowling is very respectful to her.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not sure. I¡¯ve never seen her before.¡± ¡°Me neither. Could she be Mrs. Stone¡¯s daughter-inw?¡± ¡°We¡¯ve all seen her daughter-inw before. Oh, could she be her second daughter-inw?¡± The people spected about Serenity¡¯s identity and exchanged whispers. Just then, two women came out of the house. Someone went over and asked the older woman, ¡°Mrs. Newman, do you know who that woman beside Mrs. Stone is? Did you hear Mrs. Dowling introduce the identity of that woman when you were inside the house?¡± Everyone knew everyone else in this circle, so they all wanted to know who Serenity was since she was a new face. Mrs. Newman said indifferently, ¡°She¡¯s just a country bumpkin. Does she really think she can climb the socialdder and join the elites?¡± The crowd was silent. Mrs. Newman¡¯s youngest daughter answered in a disdainful tone, ¡°She¡¯s Serenity Hunt.¡± The others eximed, ¡®The missus of the York family!¡± Mrs. Newman still looked indifferent, but there was a hint of disdain in her tone. ¡°Like I said, she¡¯s just a country bumpkin who somehow got lucky enough to marry into the York family. Mr. York married her without even hosting a wedding banquet. Who knows what tricks she yed to get her way?¡± The people around only felt that Mrs. Newman was being jealous. Chapter 999 Chapter 999 Chapter 999 Mrs. Newman did not care what people thought of her and continued to say, ¡°Mrs. Stone and Ms. Stone are really magnanimous. Their ideal son-in-w was stolen away by some niece, but Mrs. Stone is still able to bring Serenity out and introduce her to everyone.¡± If it were Mrs. Newman, she would not be able to do it. No matter how close a niece was, how could a niecepare to a daughter? Someone rebuked Mrs. Newman and said, ¡°You should be careful with your words, Mrs. Newman. Mr. York never epted Ms. Stone¡¯s feelings or promised her anything. It was all Ms. Stone¡¯s wishful thinking. However, it¡¯s true that Ms. Stone is magnanimous. She was in love with Mr. York, but she could let go of him when she found out that he was married. Furthermore, she generously sent her blessings to the couple. It really changed my perception of her. ¡°You can say all that in front of us, but don¡¯t talk about Mrs. York¡¯s identity elsewhere. Mr. York isn¡¯t someone your family can afford to offend.¡± Mrs. Newman opened her mouth to say something, but in the end, she choked on her words and did not continue to argue with the otherdies. She was aughingstock in this circle because she married her brother-in-w. Herte husband was the younger brother of her current husband. They had a daughter together, but hemitted suicide by jumping off a building due to depression when their daughter was two years old. Later, she remarried, to her brother-inw. After marrying her brother-inw, she went from being the second missus to the eldest missus of the Newman family. When her inws passed away, her husband became the head of the family. However, she became a joke that many people talked about because she married herte husband¡¯s brother. After her remarriage, she gave birth to another daughter and son. The daughter she had with herte husband, Camryn, lived like a nobody in the Newman family. It was said that Camryn was treated worse than a servant. Furthermore, she became blind because of an illness when she was sixteen, which made her even more annoying. Even her biological mother treated her as invisible and left her to fend for herself. She never brought Camryn out to social events. Everyone knew of the second daughter of the Newmans, but no one knew about Camryn. It was said that Camryn opened a flower shop in order to survive while being blind. She earned a small ie every month to sustain herself, but her halfsister often caused trouble for her. There was a saying that if a child followed their father after a divorce, the father would gradually neglect the child after he had more children with the new wife. For Camryn, it was the other way around. Her uncle and stepfather never treated her well in the first ce, and her mother treated her increasingly worse in order to appease her stepfather. Serenity did not know that Mrs. Newman was prejudiced against her. She followed her aunt to meet manydies. Compared to the youngerdies, the women who had husbands and children of their own were friendlier to her. There were also many people who looked down on her, but no one dared say anything in front of her because of Audrey. At most, they would ignore her. After staying in the house for half an hour, Elisa got tired of dealing with those people and pulled Serenity out of the house to walk around the yard. It was still the most crowded area here. In this circle, Elisa was recognized for being arrogant and condescending. No All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. one darede forward when they saw Elisae out. Elisa pulled Serenity to the edge of thewn to sit down on two chairs. They were away from the crowd but could still take in everyone¡¯s movements. ¡°How do you feel, Seren?¡± Elisa swirled the ss of wine in her hand and asked Serenity with a tilt of her head. Serenity leaned back in her chairzily and said with a light smile, ¡°It¡¯s fine. I exchanged a few more words with those who are friendly to me, and I didn¡¯t bother with those who disdain me and look down on me. ¡°Although I haven¡¯t been active in this social ss for long, it¡¯s not my first time experiencing this. I know manydies here, but they don¡¯t know me. I¡¯ve seen how they act in the past, so I know clearly what kind of people they are.¡± Chapter 1000 Chapter 1000 Chapter 1000 ¡°After spending half an hour in the house, the most I gained was a name card.¡± Elisaughed. ¡°That sounds about right. Everyone is in it for profit. Who would want to care about you if there was nothing to gain? What do you want to eat? I¡¯ll go get you some food.¡± ¡°I saw some delicate pastries earlier. They look delicious. Bring some for me. I ate a little at the store, so I¡¯m not that hungry.¡± Serenity had a sweet tooth and wanted to try some of the exquisite snacks. In the past, when she apanied Jasmine and Aunt Rachel to parties, Jasmine and she would just hide in the corner to eat and drink. She liked the pastries the most. They were always much better than the ones she got from stores. ¡°Sure.¡± Elisa ced her ss of red wine on the small table in front of her and got up to help Serenity get food. A whileter, she returned empty-handed, but she was followed by two maids working for the Dowlings. The maids held trays with the food that Elisa had picked out for Serenity and herself. ¡°Leave them here for me, thanks.¡± The two maids put down the trays, excused themselves, and turned around to serve the others. The two cousins hid in the corner, eating and drinking. No one darede over to disturb them either, mainly because Elisa had a bad temper. She would not show any respect if a person she did not look favorably upon approached her, and no one could afford to be humiliated on an asion like this. ¡°Seren.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Elisa suddenly nudged Serenity and gestured for her to look at a girl who was standing in another corner. The girl fetched a packet of something from her delicate purse and poured it into her ss of wine. Then, she turned around and walked back into the crowd as if nothing had happened. She did not notice Elisa and Serenity the entire time, so she did not know that her movements were being watched. ¡°What did she add to the drink?¡± Elisa said, ¡°Probably some kind of drug. It¡¯ll dissolve in the wine, and the taste of wine will cover it up, so the person drinking it won¡¯t be able to tell that it was spiked. I wonder who her target is. She must be trying to incur the Dowlings¡¯ wrath by doing something like this at Ms. Dowling¡¯s birthday party.¡± ¡°I think we bumped into her when we first arrived. Herst name is Newman, right?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t remember. I never bother with people like them. I only came tonight to apany you, otherwise my mom and I wouldn¡¯t have shown up.¡± She was doing it all for Serenity. Serenityughed. ¡°I¡¯ll knit you some small animals when I have the time. What animals do you want? I¡¯ll gift them to you.¡± ¡°I want all of the twelve zodiac signs.¡± ¡°Sure. Give me some time and I¡¯ll send them to you after I¡¯m done. But make sure not to show them off. Zachary is a petty person and will get jealous.¡± Zachary was jealous by nature. Elisaughed. ¡°Just be happy with what you got. You don¡¯t know how many people want to experience his domineering side.¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah, I¡¯m happy with what I have now. ¡°I wonder who Ms. Newman will give that cup of wine to.¡± Chapter 1001 Chapter 1001 Chapter 1001 Serenity kept an eye on Ms. Newman and saw that thetter did not give the cup of drugged wine to anyone else, nor did she drink it herself. Serenity was a little curious. What was Ms. Newman nning? Soon, she got her answer. It was not that Ms. Newman did not want to give the ss of wine to anyone, but the person she wanted to give it to had just arrived. A motorcycle drove into the Dowling family vi. In the yard full of luxury cars, the motorcycle stood out like a sore thumb. The person who rode the motorcycle was a girl in her twenties, but she was not the center of attention here. The focus was on the woman sitting behind her while holding a bouquet of flowers. When she got off the motorcycle, she waved a white cane to feel about the road ahead and slowly walked forward. She was blind! Serenity put down her ss and sat upright, watching the blind girl slowly walk toward thergewn with the bouquet in one hand and the white cane in the other. A photo came into her mind. It was the wife candidate that Grandma May picked out for Callum. Grandma May wanted Callum to pursue and marry her within a year or he would bear the consequences. Yes, herst name was Newman. Camryn Newman. She was the stepdaughter and niece of Mr. Newman, the head of Newman Enterprise. Serenity did not expect to see Camryn at the Dowling family banquet. Camryn walked very slowly, mainly because she could not see. The parking area was not far from the second daughter of the Newman family, Carrie Newman. An ordinary person would only need to walk for two minutes, but Camryn walked for ten minutes before she reached Carrie. ¡°I told you to send a bouquet of flowers over, but you took long enough. It¡¯s a miracle how your store hasn¡¯t closed down when your delivery speed is so slow.¡± Carrie was six years younger than Camryn and would be turning twenty this year. She was the first child that Mrs. Newman gave birth to after marrying her brother-inw and was deeply loved by the couple. The Newman family was rich with assets worth a billion, but no one knew how wealthy they were. Carrie was spoiled by her parents and developed a capricious and unruly nature. The person she hated the most was Camryn. She always felt that Camryn stole the title of the eldest daughter of the family, which should have belonged to her. Even if they shared the same mother, the sisters were like enemies. Camryn waited for her sister to finish her sarcasm, then handed the bouquet to her sister and said indifferently, ¡°I¡¯ve sent you the flowers you want. Please pay two hundred bucks.¡± ¡®You want two hundred bucks for a bunch of silly flowers?¡± Camryn faced her sister. She wore arge pair of shades that covered part of her face, and her expression remained nd when faced with her sister¡¯s question. ¡®The bouquet was customized ording to your request. It¡¯ll cost two hundred no matter which store you buy it from.¡± ¡°Fine, two hundred it is.¡± Carrie took the bouquet and handed the ss of wine to Camryn. Camryn did not take it. ¡°Help me drink this ss of wine.¡± She shoved the ss into Camryn¡¯s hand. Camryn held the ss and said after a moment of silence, ¡°I don¡¯t drink wine.¡± ¡°Do you want your money or not? Do you want to continue running your flower shop? If you don¡¯t drink the wine, then you won¡¯t receive the money from me. I¡¯ll wreck your shop too.¡± Camryn tightened her grip on the stem of the wine ss to prevent herself from impulsively pouring the wine on Carrie. Her sister was doted on by her mother and stepfather, so she could not afford to offend her! Carrie took out a thousand dors worth of bills and waved it in front of Camryn, saying, ¡°Do you smell that? It¡¯s money. I prepared a thousand bucks for you. As long as you drink the wine, the money is yours. It¡¯ll be two hundred for the flowers and eight hundred for the delivery fees.¡± The people around watched the sisters¡¯ confrontation. No one stood up for Camryn. They seemed to be used to this scene.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1002 Chapter 1002 Chapter 1002 Mrs. Newman was talking to a fewdies not far away. She was aware of what her two daughters were doing, but she did not move and continued to chat calmly with the others. Camryn was silent for a long time before asking her sister, ¡®You¡¯ll pay for the flowers after I drink this?¡± ¡®There are so many people around to testify. As long as you drink the wine, I¡¯ll give you one grand.¡± ¡°Fine.¡± Camryn brought the ss close to her lips and was just about to drink it. Suddenly, a hand reached out and snatched the ss away. ¡°Don¡¯t drink it.¡± It was an unfamiliar voice. Camryn identified the other party¡¯s location through her voice and turned her head to face the stranger with a puzzled expression. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. The person who snatched away her ss of wine was Serenity. Other people were just watching the show, but Serenity could not simply stand by because she knew that Carrie had spiked the wine. It was clear that Carrie had bad intentions. Who knew what would happen to Camryn if she drank it? It would be fine if Serenity did not know that Camryn was the wife candidate who Grandma May picked out for Callum, but since she knew, she had to step in and protect Camryn. ¡®This has nothing to do with you, Ms. Hunt.¡± Carrie¡¯s expression darkened when she saw that it was Serenity. She was not willing to call Serenity Mrs. York because it made her feel that she was inferior to a country bumpkin. ¡°I saw Ms. Carrie drug this ss of wine earlier.¡± The person who said this was not Serenity, but Elisa. Elisa did not know why Serenity was meddling, but since thetter made a move, she did notg behind and interjected as well. She did not care about someone of Carrie¡¯s status. She directly exposed Carrie¡¯s plot. ¡°Ms. Stone, you can put whatever you want into your mouth, but you should be more mindful of whates out of it. Which eye of yours saw that I drugged the wine?¡± Elisa raised her chin and said arrogantly, ¡°I have two eyes. I saw it with both of them.¡± ¡®You-¡± Elisa took the ss from Serenity¡¯s hand and handed it back to Carrie. ¡® This is your wine, Ms. Carrie. You should drink it yourself.¡± ¡°Ms. Stone, this is between me and her. I suggest you and Ms. Hunt stay out of it.¡± Carrie was spoiled by her family and was quite stubborn. She was not afraid of Elisa at all. She even leaned into Elisa¡¯s ear and whispered, ¡°Ms. Stone, other people might be scared of you, but I¡¯m not.¡± Then, she straightened up and handed the wine ss to Camryn again. Her eyes looked askance provocatively at Elisa and Serenity, but her words were directed toward Camryn. ¡®You can¡¯t leave unless you drink this wine. Even if someone helps you to leave now, I can still make you drink itter, so drink it now!¡± Camryn bit her lower lip. She believed what Elisa said. Her sister must have drugged the wine. Forcing her to drink it was a deliberate attempt to make her look bad in front of everyone. She already tried to reduce her presence in the Newman family, but Carrie still targeted her. They shared the same mother, but not only did Carrie not treat her like a sister, she had always tried to cause trouble for her. ¡°I said, drink it!¡± Carrie was extremely arrogant. Chapter 1003 Chapter 1003 Chapter 1003 Carrie was provoking Elisa and Serenity. They could help Camryn now, but could they help her forever? Carrie could wreck Camryn¡¯s flower shop any time she wanted, and Camryn would not dare to do anything about it. Camryn was not stupid. She would not drink the ss of wine after Elisa said that it was drugged. ¡°I¡¯ll give these flowers to you as a gift. You don¡¯t have to pay.¡± Then, she faced Elisa and Serenity and thanked them. There was a hint of gratitude in her normally indifferent tone. ¡°Camryn Newman, I asked you to drink the wine!¡± Carrie felt that her n was about to fail. When Camryn turned to leave, she reached out and grabbed Camryn, pulling her sister toward her. She grabbed Camryn¡¯s chin with one hand, pinched it forcefully, and was just about to pour the ss of wine into her throat. Serenity and Elisa moved at the same time. Serenity easily reversed the situation with her kickboxing skills. She not only rescued Camryn from Carrie¡¯s grip but also grasped Carrie¡¯s chin. Meanwhile, Elisa grabbed the wine ss and poured it into Carrie¡¯s mouth. Carrie struggled desperately but still ended up swallowing a few gulps of the wine. Serenity only let her go after she swallowed. Elisa tossed the ss to the side, where it shattered on the ground. The loud noise alerted even Mrs. Newman, who was still calmly chatting with others. She immediately came over when she found out that her younger daughter was at a disadvantage. ¡°M-Mom, let¡¯s go back. I want to go back now.¡± Carrie knew very well what kind of drug she added to the wine and what the consequences were after drinking it. She did not want to undress in front of so many people and make a fool of herself. She prepared the drug for Camryn, but because of Elisa and Serenity¡¯s interference, she ended up drinking it instead. She was anxious to leave before the drug kicked in. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Carrie?¡± Mrs. Newman asked anxiously. When she saw Camryn standing by the side, she red at her and questioned in a stern voice, ¡°What did you do to your sister, Camryn?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t do anything to her.¡± Camryn¡¯s expression turned cold at her mother¡¯s questioning. It seemed that the rtionship between them was not the best either. ¡°Mom, it¡¯s so hot. I want to take off my clothes¡­¡± Carrie was still sober, but she felt hot as the drug started to kick in. She started tugging the evening gown she was wearing. Mrs. Newman instantly understood what was happening. She hurriedly embraced Carrie and swung her hand at Camryn. Serenity pulled Camryn away, so Mrs. Newman did not manage to hit her. ¡°Mrs. York, this is a family matter. Please don¡¯t meddle.¡± Serenity said innocently, ¡°I already did.¡± What could she do? She could only continue to meddle. ¡°Mrs. Newman, isn¡¯t she your daughter too? You¡¯re not even going to ask what happened? I saw everything that happened. Your younger daughter drugged a ss of wine and tried to force her elder sister to drink it. ¡°She reaps what she sows!¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Mrs. Newman snapped, ¡°Even so, that¡¯s between the sisters. I advise you to stay out of it! Who do you think you are? You¡¯re just a country bumpkin. Do you think you¡¯re really some missus just because that¡¯s what other people call you?¡± Serenity had a vague smile. ¡°So what if I¡¯m a country bumpkin? That has nothing to do with you too. I don¡¯t need other people to call me missus either, but as long as my husband is Mr. York, I¡¯m Mrs. York! ¡°I might not want to meddle in other people¡¯s affairs, but I think I¡¯ll meddle in Camryn¡¯s. Mrs. Newman, I don¡¯t care who you are either. I dare you to touch a single hair on Camryn¡¯s head after going back tonight!¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes were cold as she red at Mrs. Newman. ¡®You-!¡± Mrs. Newman was so angry that her face turned scarlet. Chapter 1004 Chapter 1004 Chapter 1004 Just then, Audrey and Mrs. Dowling heard themotion and hurriedly came out of the house. Mrs. Newman did not dare confront Audrey head-on, and her darling daughter was suffering the consequences of her own actions, so she simply apologized to Mrs. Dowling and quickly left the venue while trudging both their weights along. When everything calmed down again, Camryn thanked Serenity and Elisa. She did not understand why they helped her. From her mother¡¯s shouting, she learned that one of the people who helped her was Mrs. York, the most talked about person in Wiltspoon recently. She did not expect Mrs. York to be the chivalrous type and saved her. In fact, even without Serenity¡¯s help, she had her ways to get out of the trap. She eked out a living under the thumb of her stepfather and her mother, who was as cruel as a stepmother, and slowly collected evidence¡­ Camryn would not have lived until now if she did not have tricks up her sleeve. Serenity said in concern, ¡°If they try to cause trouble for you after going back¡­¡± She did not know if her words could threaten Mrs. Newman. Camryn said faintly, ¡°They¡¯ve never really managed to one-up me before.¡± Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes glimmered. In the end, she said, ¡°Well, take care then.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Camryn once again thanked Serenity and Elisa. Then, she calmly walked forward while probing the way with her white cane. Only then did her clerk dare toe over and help her. Soon, Camryn left the Dowling residence on the motorcycle. It was gettingte after the scene the two Newman sisters made, and many guests left one after another. Audrey took her daughter and niece to say goodbye and left too. She first sent Serenity back to Brynfield. She did not say a single word about her daughter and niece helping Camryn. Zachary received a message from his beloved wife long ago and was waiting for her at the entrance of Brynfield. When Audrey¡¯s car stopped, he walked over and greeted her first, then pulled open the car door for his beloved wife like a gentleman and reached out to her to help her out of the car. ¡°Aunt Audrey, would you and Elisa want toe in for some tea?¡± Audrey smiled and politely declined. ¡°It¡¯ste, so we won¡¯t go in. Hurry up and take Serenity inside, Zachary.¡± ¡°Bye, Aunt Audrey.¡± Zachary was just asking out of courtesy. He guessed that Audrey and Elisa would refuse anyway. After all, it was quitete. The young couple watched Audrey¡¯s car drive away before they headed into the neighborhood hand-in-hand. ¡°Seren, you¡¯re so beautiful today.¡± ¡°Am I not beautiful any other day?¡± ¡°You¡¯re always beautiful. In my eyes, you¡¯re the most beautiful woman in the world.¡± Beauty lies in the eyes of the beholder. ¡°Zachary.¡± ¡°Hm?¡± ¡°I might be in trouble.¡± Zachary did not stop and continued to walk. ¡°What happened? Tell me how This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. much trouble you¡¯re in so I can figure out how to fix it.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, it¡¯s nothing major. I just offended some people.¡± Zachary said dotingly yet domineeringly, ¡°Even if it¡¯s major. I¡¯ll find a way to help you solve it. You don¡¯t have to worry about offending others. All that matters is that no one offends you.¡± Chapter 1005 Chapter 1005 Chapter 1005 ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to ask who I offended?¡± Zachary looked at her and said, ¡°There¡¯s no need to. No matter who you offend, I¡¯ll always be on your side.¡± In his eyes, his wife was always right. Serenity muttered, ¡°Zachary, you¡¯ll spoil me rotten if you trust me like this.¡± ¡°That¡¯s exactly what I¡¯m trying to do. I¡¯ll spoil you so rotten that no one else can stand you. That way, you¡¯ll always be mine. No one will try to steal you away.¡± Serenity could not help butugh. ¡°Who would dare steal me away after knowing that I¡¯m your wife?¡± Shawn had been secretly in love with her for many years and did not give up even after finding out that she was married. He hoped that she could still marry him after she divorced her husband. However, when his mother told him that Serenity¡¯s husband was Zachary York, the heir of the York family, Shawn finally gave up. Last time, Shawn took advantage of a long weekend to hastily return to Wiltspoon. Rachel invited Jasmine and her family for dinner, and they got together with Shawn as well. Jasmine said that Shawn had matured a lot, but he had be much quieter. He did not talk much after greeting everyone. She said that he must still love Serenity, but he knew that he could notpete with Zachary. He did not darepete with Zachary either since Zachary had made a move against Lowe Lowe Enterprise when he tried to pester Serenity. No matter how love-addled Shawn¡¯s brain was, he did not dare gamble with his family business. He could not afford to gamble, and he could not afford to lose. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. He could only force himself to cut off his feelings. Before he left Wiltspoon to go back to work in Havenmill, he told Jasmine that he would probably not fall in love and get married for the next ten years. Jasmine¡¯s heart ached for her cousin, but she could onlyfort him. With her character, she could not help her cousin to pursue Serenity and destroy Serenity¡¯s marital happiness. Furthermore, Zachary was now in love with Serenity and treated her exceedingly well. For Serenity, Zachary bowed to Elisa and even acknowledged Elisa as his cousin-inw. Even if he did not fall in love with Serenity, they were still a legal couple. Jasmine was not willing to let her cousin interfere in her best friend¡¯s marriage. He would be a homewrecker. The Sox family did not have homewreckers as rtives. ¡®There¡¯s no one for now, but I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll attract a love rival as good as I am as you get better and better in the future.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°I won¡¯t be better than you no matter how hard I try. Besides, there¡¯s a world of difference between us. Even if I wanted to tter myself, there¡¯s no way I could attract a love rival on your level. Everyone in Wiltspoon now knows that I¡¯m your wife. ¡°Many people haven¡¯t seen me before, but they know my name. As soon as they hear the name Serenity Hunt, no one will dare try and steal me away.¡± The couple talked as they walked. They strolled for a while before arriving at their block. They rode the elevator to the eighth floor and returned to their small home. The house lights were lit, and the TV was also on. Zachary must have been watching TV while waiting for her to return. ¡°Where¡¯s Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°She¡¯s not here. I¡¯m not in a hurry to call her back.¡± He wanted to spend some time with her alone first. After entering the house, Zachary quickly took Serenity¡¯s indoor slippers from the shoe rack and asked her to change out of her stilettos. Serenity sighedfortably after changing into the slippers. ¡°Slippers are the best.¡± ¡°If you¡¯re not used to wearing high heels, just wear ts in the future. You¡¯re already quite tall. You¡¯ll still be taller than others without wearing heels.¡± Zachary did not want his beloved wife to torture her feet Chapter 1006 Chapter 1006 Chapter 1006 ¡°Aunt Audrey will re at you if she heard you say that.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°Your aunt has always been a stern person. She mellowed out considerably after retiring, but it¡¯ll still be hard on you because you asked her to teach you. However, she¡¯s still your aunt and is doing it for your own good. If you can bear the hardships, the lessons you learn from her will serve you for the rest of your life.¡± Serenity walked to the sofa and sat down. Zachary followed and propped her feet up, then started to massage them. Serenity tried to stop him and said, ¡°You¡¯re the high and mighty Mr. York, the CEO of York Corporation.¡± ¡°In front of you, I¡¯m just your husband. My wife tortured her feet with her muchhated stilettos for an entire night for me. Who can stop me from pampering her a little when she gets back?¡± After hearing his domineering yet sweet words, Serenity did not stop him from massaging her feet. ¡°I met Camryn Newman tonight.¡± Serenity took the initiative to tell him when he did not ask. ¡°Who¡¯s Camryn Newman?¡± Zachary focused on massaging Serenity and did not even raise his head. He could not care less who Camryn was. ¡°Didn¡¯t you see her picture earlier? She¡¯s really pretty, but her face is a little small. Therge shades she always wears take up more than half of her face, making her look even smaller. The way she speaks is soft and wispy.¡± Zachary paused in his movements and looked up at his beloved wife, saying defensively, ¡°When did I see her photo? I¡¯m not interested in any other woman besides you. I don¡¯t even want to look at photos of other women.¡± Serenity was amused. ¡°I¡¯m not being jealous. Why are you so nervous? Camryn is the wife candidate Nana picked for Callum. Didn¡¯t you see her photo too when you passed it to me?¡± ¡°I just nced at it and don¡¯t remember her face¡­ Why would I remember her face or name if she¡¯s not my wife candidate?¡± He continued to massage her legs. ¡°It turns out that Camryn is blind. Zachary, why did Nana pick a blind person for Callum? She picked me, a country bumpkin, for you, but at least I¡¯m healthy. On the other hand, she picked ady from a wealthy family for Callum, but she¡¯s blind. Besides, it seems the Newman family doesn¡¯t treat Camryn well.¡± Zachary said faintly, ¡°Nana has her reasons. She selects her granddaughters-iw ording to our characters.¡± Grandma May asking him to marry Serenity might be because of the simplest reason-a fortune teller said that Serenity and he were destined to be husband and wife. Now, Zachary believed in those words. If he had the chance, he wanted to meet that fortune teller and ask if Serenity and he could be husband and wife in their next lives too. If the fortune teller were here, he would say, ¡°You¡¯re only destined to be husband and wife in this life. Don¡¯t be too greedy. Live your current life well before worrying about your next life.¡± A next life? Nobody knew if there was a next life in the first ce. People die when their livese to an end. Like a candle being snuffed out, there would be nothing left. No one knew if reincarnation existed. People who knew and experienced it were Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. already dead, so there was no answer. ¡®That¡¯s true. I guess that¡¯s something Callum will have to deal with. Has he started yet?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t think so, but he visits Josh¡¯s office whenever he has the time. He¡¯s probably asking Josh to help get information about that Newman girl. He¡¯ll only start moving when he gets a background check on her.¡± ¡°Did you also do a background check on me?¡± Serenity suddenly asked. Chapter 1007 Chapter 1007 Chapter 1007 After a moment of silence, Zachary replied, ¡°Yes, but I trust my eyes and feelings more. That was why I concealed my identity to examine your character.¡± ¡°Given your character, you wouldn¡¯t agree to marry me either if you didn¡¯t get a background check on me. Why did you still suspect me of going after you for your money?¡± ¡°I was afraid that the investigation was wrong.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Marriage is a life-long event. Women are afraid of marrying the wrong man, but the same goes for men. I have to get along with you personally before knowing what you¡¯re really like. A background check is just a few lines of summary.¡± ¡°Yes, marriage is a life-long event. It seems we were both too hasty.¡± Serenity sighed, but said gratefully, ¡°Fortunately, we fell in love with each other.¡± If she could do it all over again, she would probably make a different choice. ¡°Keep going, Seren. I¡¯ll listen to the story.¡± Zachary did not want to talk about the time when their marriage was hidden because those were the days he lied to her. If not for the fact that she was softhearted because he hurt his stomach after starving himself unintentionally, the couple¡¯s rtionship would still be frozen now. That was why he was afraid to bring up the topic of him concealing his identity and lying to her. He could avoid raking up the past by returning the topic to Camryn. ¡°Camryn has a sister who¡¯s a few years younger than her called Carrie. Carrie is quite pretty too, but her personality is horrible. She actually spiked a ss of wine and asked Camryn to send a bouquet of flowers over, then forced Camryn to drink the drugged wine in exchange for the payment for the flowers. ¡°Elisa and I saw the entire process. We¡¯ve never seen such a horrid sister before. I couldn¡¯t help but intervene, and we ended up making Carrie drink the wine instead. Boy, did that drug kick in quick. In just a few minutes, Carrie said she was feeling hot and tried to strip. ¡°Mrs. Newman is as biased as my grandparents. Camryn is also her daughter, and she takes after her mother more than Carrie does. However, Mrs. Newman only med Camryn and even tried to p her, but I pulled her away. ¡°Carrie is too vicious. She tried to ruin Camryn¡¯s life. If I didn¡¯t butt in and let Camryn drink the wine¡­ She would¡¯ve lost her rationality after the drug kicked in. No matter whose hands she fell into, it¡¯d be devastating for her. ¡°Camryn is the wife Nana picked for Callum, so we¡¯ll be sisters-inw in the future. It¡¯d be fine if I didn¡¯t know, but since I do, I have to protect her. How can a missus of the York family be bullied by others?¡± Zachary said faintly, ¡°Camryn Newman was born to Mrs. Newman and her first husband. When her husband died, she remarried, and her current husband is the elder brother of herte husband. In other words, she remarried her brotherinw.¡± Serenity paused. ¡°Even so, she can¡¯t treat her eldest daughter that way.¡± ¡°Nana must have had her reasons for picking Camryn. She probably knows something we don¡¯t. Matching Camryn with Callum might also be to help her.¡± ¡®What does Nana know?¡± Serenity was very curious. Zachary thought about it and said, ¡°If my guess is correct, the death of Camryn¡¯s father might not be as simple as it appeared to be.¡± Serenity was shocked.Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Chapter 1008 Chapter 1008 Chapter 1008 ¡°Waters run deep in wealthy families. They can do anything for the sake of their interests, but don¡¯t worry, Seren. Our family isn¡¯t like that. Even if I paid someone in our family to take my spot as the head, they wouldn¡¯t want to.¡± Serenity believed in Zachary¡¯s words. She met her inws several times. Whether it was her elders or peers, they were all good people. The only person who was a little prejudiced against her and was not satisfied with her was her mother-inw, but thetter still did not do anything to harm her. When she was angry at Zachary, her mother-inw apanied Grandma May to apologize to her instead of taking the opportunity to tell Zachary to divorce her. Perhaps to Tania, although she cared about what her daughter-inw¡¯s background was, her son¡¯s feelings and happiness were more important than that. ¡°Mrs. Newman was ring at me like she was trying to kill me. I wonder if she¡¯ll This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. badmouth me to her husband when she goes home. Zachary, is the Newman family powerful? Did I cause trouble for you by offending Mrs. Newman and her daughter?¡± Zachary finished massaging her legs and sat down beside her. He reached out to wrap an arm around her shoulder, took her into his arms, and said arrogantly, ¡°Not to blow my own trumpet, but besides your aunt¡¯s family, there¡¯s no other family in Wiltspoon that canpete with the York family. ¡°If pushes to shove, even your aunt¡¯s family is no match for the Yorks. The York family isrge, united, and has connections with many other families. Being an enemy of the York family is the same as being the enemy of several powerful families at the same time. ¡°The Newmans are nothing. They don¡¯t run their business in Wiltspoon either. Wiltspoon is just where they founded theirpany, but I didn¡¯t look down on them and investigated them before. They have around a billion worth of assets, but their family has always been low-key. ¡°If not for Mrs. Newman marrying her brother-inw just a hundred days after her husband¡¯s death, no one would have remembered that the Newman family existed.¡± The Newmans probably could not keep a low profile anymore even if they wanted to because of an unruly daughter like Carrie. What happened tonight at the Dowling family banquet had most likely spread across Wiltspoon¡¯s high society. Serenity thought about how the people at the banquet simply watched on coldly, and how it seemed they were all used to the scene. Carrie must have bullied Camryn many times before. Camryn said that her family had never really one-upped her before. Only then was Serenity relieved and let her go. Even if Elisa and she did not meddle tonight, she believed that Camryn would be able to get out of the situation. ¡°You¡¯re quite well-informed.¡± Zachary kissed her on the cheek and said warmly, ¡°I have to watch out in my position in case a strong enemy suddenly appears and eliminates me before I can act. That¡¯s why I always have to scope out my territory for potentially strong enemies. ¡°Even if I¡¯m not able to let York Corporation flourish in my hands, I have to at least maintain its standing. Fortunately, I haven¡¯t disappointed my elder¡¯s expectations in that regard. York Corporation is doing well under me.¡± It was doing much better than when it was in his father¡¯s hands. What he wanted to do was to pick an heir early and cultivate that heir with care. When the heir was able to take over, he would learn from his father and retire early to live a sweet life with his wife. Unfortunately, there was no one from the next generation yet. His nana was still counting on them to have a child early. Zachary wanted to be a father now. He wanted a child as cute as Sonny. It did not matter if the baby was a girl or a boy. As long as they belonged to Seren and him, he would love them all the same. Chapter 1009 Chapter 1009 Chapter 1009 ¡°Go back to the room and change out of your dress. Zachary wanted to pick Serenity up as he spoke, but she stopped him. ¡°I can walk.¡± Serenity stood up. Her legs felt much better after Zachary¡¯s massage. ¡°Seren, you won¡¯t even give me the chance to perform. I want to train my arm strength. Carrying you around is a good way of training.¡± Serenity pinched his face lightly. ¡°What do you mean you want to train your arm strength? You work out every day. Let¡¯s go to sleep already.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll draw the bath for you.¡± Zachary did not carry her back to the room and went ahead to draw the bath for her. Then, he brought her pajamas so she could sleepfortably after soaking in a hot bath. Aftering out of the bath, Serenity climbed into bed andy beside Zachary. She suddenly remembered something, propped her head up, and kissed him twice on the cheek. ¡°Good night, Babe.¡± Zachary kissed her back. ¡°Good night. Sweet dreams.¡± ¡°I rarely have nightmares.¡± Serenityy down and habitually snuggled into his arms. Zachary embraced his beloved wife and slept in contentment. The next day, the couple went back to work. Tania, who was far away in Wildridge Manor, received a call from a person she had yed cards with several times before. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± The person on the phone told Tania, ¡°Your daughter-inw is really nosy, isn¡¯t she? She even interfered with other families¡¯ affairs. She¡¯ll offend other people easily if she does that.¡± Tania was dumbfounded and asked, ¡°What do you mean my daughter-in-w is nosy? Whose family affairs did she meddle in? Did she offend you?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you know that your daughter-inw went to the Dowling family¡¯s banquet last night? She went with Mrs. Stone instead of apanying her mother-iw. Do you two not get along? ¡°I didn¡¯t go to the Dowlings¡¯ banquet, but if you ask me, the Dowlings¡¯ status isn¡¯t worthy of your daughter-inw attending. Even if she¡¯s a country bumpkin, she¡¯s the eldest missus of the York family after marrying your son. She should be mingling with the upper crust instead of a middless family like the Dowlings. ¡°She didn¡¯t offend me, but she offended Mrs. Newman. This is what I heard from others. The second daughter of the Newmans, Ms. Carrie, targeted her elder sister and tried to make her drink a ss of wine. Your daughter- inw tried ying the hero and stopped Ms. Carrie from forcing Ms. Camryn to drink. In the end, she made Ms. Carrie drink the wine instead. ¡°Soon after that, Ms. Carrie said that she was feeling hot and tried to undress. Mrs. Newman was heartbroken and furious. She probably hates your daughterinw¡¯s guts out now. Everyone knows that the Newman sisters don¡¯t get along but that¡¯s between the sisters. It¡¯s no wonder your daughter-inw offended Mrs. Newman with her meddling.¡±Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Chapter 1010 Chapter 1010 Chapter 1010 ¡°Mr. Newman is protective and dotes on his children the most, but your daughter-inw caused his beloved daughter to make a fool out of herself in public. Mr. and Mrs. Newman probably hate your daughter-inw now. Isn¡¯t she causing trouble for the York family? ¡°Mrs. York, you should discipline your daughter-inw. She represents the York family now. She has a bad background, and her parents are dead, so she had no one to educate her. Shouldn¡¯t you correct that wild nature of hers? How can someone like her be the missus of the York family?¡± The other party went on a tirade about Serenity. Tania¡¯s expression darkened on the spot. Liam saw the drastic change in his wife¡¯s face and asked with concern,¡± \Nho¡¯s calling? What did they say?¡± Tania did not immediately answer her husband¡¯s question, but coldly refuted the other party and said, ¡°Mrs. Walker, what does this matter have to do with you? You went on and on about my daughter-inw not minding her own business, but aren¡¯t you doing the same now? ¡°How is it any of your business how my daughter-inw acts? She wasn¡¯t meddling. She was being righteous and saved Ms. Camryn¡¯s life. There¡¯s nothing nobler than saving someone. I¡¯m proud of my daughter-inw¡¯s sense of justice. ¡°She¡¯s free to hang out with whomever she wants, and it¡¯s her freedom to choose her social circle. I won¡¯t interfere with that. I believe my daughter-in w is a good judge of character. Anyone she¡¯s willing to mingle with must be a good person. ¡°You don¡¯t need to worry about how my daughter-inw should be disciplined either. No matter what Serenity does, our whole family will support her. You mentioned that Mr. Newman was protective? Sorry, but the York family is the same. Mr. Newman is wee to try to usest night¡¯s incident with Serenity against us. ¡®The York family isn¡¯t afraid of anyone. So what if Serenity offended someone? The only thing that matters is that no one offends her or makes her angry. We¡¯ll help her clean up the mess no matter what happens. She¡¯s the eldest missus of the York family and the wife of the next head of the family. She has the right to do whatever she wants. Why, are you dissatisfied with that? ¡°She has nothing to do with you, so take that dissatisfaction and stuff it! Don¡¯t make such thoughtless remarks in front of me again, and don¡¯t ask me out to y cards with you in the future. I won¡¯t y cards with nosy people like you and tell my daughter-inw what to do.¡± Tania hung up the phone after speaking and deleted the other party¡¯s phone number. ¡°Who does she think she is? How dare she call my daughter-inw meddlesome? She¡¯s the meddlesome one. Do I need her to teach my daughterinw how to behave?¡± ¡°Who was bad mouthing Serenity?¡± Liam asked. ¡°Serenity went to the Dowling family banquetst night with Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Stone is her aunt, so what¡¯s wrong with her following her aunt? That shrew took it as a sign that I don¡¯t get along with my daughter-inw. What does our rtionship have to do with them anyway? It¡¯s none of their business. ¡°Mrs. Newman was biased and allowed Ms. Carrie to bully Ms. Camryn. Serenity couldn¡¯t stand it and helped Ms. Camryn out, but those women called her a busybody. Even if it was not Serenity¡¯s business, what she did was righteous. ¡°I¡¯m proud and happy that I have a virtuous daughter-inw. What has it got to do with them? God, I¡¯m so mad. My good mood early in the morning is ruined now.¡± Liam finally understood what happened and quickly coaxed his wife. ¡°We can¡¯t control what other people say, so just don¡¯t get involved with them in the future. I also think that Serenity did the right thing. Since what she did was justified, let¡¯s support her.¡± ¡°Ms. Carrie was horrible. How could she try to drug and harm her own sister who is blind? If Serenity hadn¡¯t helped Ms. Camryn, her life would¡¯ve been ruined by her own sister. Mrs. Newman is no different. They¡¯re both her daughters, but she let her younger daughter harm her older one. How does she sleep at night?¡± As a mother herself, Tania treated her sons equally. She was not biased toward Zachary just because he was the eldest son and the sessor of the familyMaterial ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1011 Chapter 1011 Chapter 1011 ¡°Ms. Carrie drugged her own sister?¡± It came as a shock to Liam. ¡°I know, right? Serenity did a good thing by saving Ms. Camryn¡¯s life, but the busybodies said Serenity should mind her own business. ¡°They had the nerve to say that Serenity¡¯s meddling rubbed Mrs. Newman and her younger daughter off the wrong way. Apparently, Mr. Newman can be very protective of his family. So what? I¡¯m protective too! My daughter-inw fears no one! I have Serenity¡¯s back even if she upset all Wiltspoonians. Of course, on the condition that she¡¯s in the right. ¡°That really riled me up. I can¡¯t believe they tried to stir the pot with me. Are they trying to make me the first person ever to break apart the peace of the Yorks?¡± Liam uttered with a smile, ¡°My wife is too smart to be fooled.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡¯m fuming here, and yet you¡¯re smiling there. Serenity is your daughter-inw too, you know. Let me put this out there. You better criticize anyone who calls Serenity an insensible and meddling country bumpkin!¡± Tania was not having it. While Tania was not pleased that Serenity came from humble beginnings, and her oldest son was out of Serenity¡¯s league, others did not have a right to pass their judgment on Serenity¡¯s low birth and actions. Besides, Tania, as the mother-inw, had always been cordial with Serenity, never gave Serenity an attitude, or criticized Serenity for anything. Why were outsiders pointing the finger at Serenity then? Liam immediately said, ¡°Alright, alright. I won¡¯tugh. I¡¯m relieved that you¡¯re watching over your daughter- inw. Serenity doesn¡¯t need our protection. Zachary is fully capable of that, and no one in Wiltspoon can touch her. ¡°Serenity will probably be called Wiltspoon¡¯s Untouchable in less than a year.¡± Giving her husband the stink eye, Tania remarked, ¡°That¡¯s not a nice name, but here¡¯s a random fact to show that I do give my daughter-inw some attention. Crab is probably Serenity¡¯s favorite food. Zack told the butler to deliver the freshest seafood to make a seafood feast for her when Zack brought her to his estate. ¡°I won¡¯t poke my nose in my son and daughter-inw¡¯s marriage, but I¡¯m not going to stand down when someone speaks ill of my daughter-inw to me.¡± ¡°Yes, darling! Make them regret their actions!¡± Liam believed that he did not need to get involved as his son would keep Serenity out of harm¡¯s way. Nevertheless, his wife was steamed up, so he better echoed whatever she said. It was the only way she could let out steam. Mrs. Walker¡¯s call drove Tania up the wall. Not only did Mrs. Walker get a dressing down from Tania, but her number was now blocked too. Mrs. Walker thought she could butter Tania up. s, Tania¡¯s reaction took Mrs. Walker by surprise. Tania was rather protective of her daughter-inw. The conflict between the mother-inw and daughter-inw did not seem to exist. Mrs. Walker had a loose tongue. She ryed the whole incident to the other women in her tight circle, and soon word spread among the upper crust of Wiltspoon. No one would push their luck to badmouth Serenity in Tania¡¯s presence. Unless, of course, they wanted their numbers blocked. Regardless of Serenity¡¯s upbringing and actions, she was the wife of the richest heir. Sure, Tania was not fond of her daughter-inw, but there was no way she would allow anyone to say it out loud. The taunt toward Serenity was a p in Tania¡¯s face. Of course, she was going to be ticked off. Meanwhile, Mr. Newman stood outside his daughter¡¯s bedroom at the Newmans¡¯ residence. He waited until his wife came out from the other side of the door before asking with concern, ¡°Has Carrie¡¯s fever gone down?¡± ¡°The fever hase down, but she¡¯s groggy. I told her to sleep.¡± Last night, Mrs. Newman put Carrie in a bath of ice water when they came home. It was only then the child made a turnaround. Chapter 1012 Chapter 1012 Chapter 1012 The chilly spring and the soak in the bath of ice water gave Carrie a cold. With her temperature running high in the middle of the night, Mrs. Newman was quick to notify the family doctor. The doctor examined Carrie and prescribed her medication. Mrs. Newman fed her daughter the medication and stayed by her daughter¡¯s side. Mrs. Newman only left her daughter¡¯s bedroom when Carrie¡¯s fever subsided. ¡°Where¡¯s Camryn? Didn¡¯t shee backst night?¡± The mention of her elder daughter turned Mrs. Newman¡¯s tenderness into a scowl. ¡°That blind girl got Ms. Stone¡¯s help through some dumb luck. That country bumpkin was on her side too. ¡°That country bumpkin with no parents thinks she¡¯s all that after marrying into a wealthy family. Carrie would¡¯ve been fine if she stayed out of our business. The country bumpkin struck fast. She must work out in the gym a lot.¡± The couple talked aboutst night¡¯s incident while walking down the stairs. Mrs. Newman hated Serenity¡¯s guts. Her daughter would not have fallen sick and been made a fool if it were not for Serenity. ¡°Camryn¡¯s business operates at eight o¡¯clock in the morning. She should be out by this hour.¡± Mr. Newman faintly replied, ¡°Carrie went a little too far this time. Camryn is her sister no matter what. What would people think of Carrie if she keeps picking on Camryn? Carrie is twenty now, and soon it¡¯ll be her time to get married. Who will want to marry her if she acts like this?¡± ¡°Carrie is the best. It¡¯s not like we don¡¯t have money. I will find her the perfect man if she feels she¡¯s ready for marriage. The guy should marry into our family. I don¡¯t want her to take someone else¡¯s name. ¡°She¡¯ll feel right at home in our ce rather than be someone¡¯s daughter-inw. ¡°Don¡¯t stick up for Camryn. She¡¯s a troublemaker and a devil. Carrie¡¯s reputation wouldn¡¯t be so bad if it wasn¡¯t for her. I told you. We should¡¯ve left her to die.¡± ¡°Honey!¡± Mr. Newman eximed with a stern face. Mrs. Newman pursed her lips without saying anything more. A whileter, she said, ¡°Carrie was humiliated and put through hell. Aren¡¯t you going to do anything about it?¡± ¡°What do you want me to do? It doesn¡¯t matter that the Hunt girl is a lowborn. She¡¯s Mrs. York now. This is a fact. Everybody knows Mr. York is an uxorious husband. Elisa is not one to mess with either. ¡°It was excessive of Carrie. She usually has harmless fun with Camryn, but she crossed the line by trying to drug Camryn this time. You better talk some senses into Carrie when she gets better. Stop her from wrecking Camryn¡¯s flower shop. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°No matter what, Camryn is my brother¡¯s only daughter. ¡°Put together a gift. I¡¯ll head to York Corporation with the gift and meet Mr. York to apologize to him and his wife.¡± Mrs. Newman grimaced. ¡°The Hunt girl upset me and Carrie. She even embarrassed Carrie. Why are you apologizing instead of sticking up for us? ¡°People are afraid of Mr. York, but he doesn¡¯t scare us. It¡¯s not like our family business is in this city. What¡¯s Mr. York going to do about it?¡± Mrs. Newman believed Zachary was not that powerful to run their business to the ground since they were not operating in Wiltspoon anyway. That was the reason Mrs. Newman did not see Serenity as a threat. Unbothered to exin his actions, Mr. Newman sternly uttered, ¡°Just do as I say. Do you think I don¡¯t feel bad that our daughter is humiliated, hurt, and sick? ¡°Mr. York is a dangerous man. We better offer peace before hees after us.¡± Chapter 1013 Chapter 1013 Chapter 1013 Complying with her husband¡¯s request, Mrs. Newman reluctantly put a gift together. She then saw Mr. Newman out the door. Once Mr. Newman was gone, Mrs. Newman murmured to herself, ¡°She¡¯s just a country bumpkin. I doubt Mr. York will love her forever. The girl¡¯s just a breath of fresh air to Mr. York for now. The country bumpkin won¡¯t be thedy of the house for long once he¡¯s bored of her.¡± Half an hourter, Zachary got a call through the inte. Mr. Chaplin ryed Mr. Newman¡¯s wishes to meet. Needless to say, Zachary knew why Mr. Newman was here. Mr. Newman turned up before Zachary had a chance to get even with the guy. ¡°Let him in,¡± Zachary callously responded to Mr. Chaplin. Mr. Chaplin hung up and ryed the message. Sitting in the building¡¯s VIP lounge on the first floor, Mr. Newman quietly but restlessly waited. He pulled himself together at the sound of iing footsteps, pretending to y it cool as the receptionist approached. ¡°Mr. Newman, our CEO will see you upstairs.¡± Mr. Newman rose to his feet and thanked the receptionist before following the receptionist with a gift in hand. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. The absence of Mr. Newman¡¯s bodyguards was to show Zachary that he came in peace. In the CEO¡¯s office, Zachary put Mr. Chaplin¡¯s call down and dialed the inte to reach Callum. Zachary said, ¡°Come to my office, Callum.¡± Thinking it was work-rted, Callum put his tasks aside and went to the top floor. He was one step ahead of Mr. Newman to reach the CEO¡¯s office. ¡°Zack.¡± Callum closed the door behind him and asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± ¡°Sit.¡± Zachary gestured for his cousin to take a seat. Callum sat down and waited for his cousin to say something. However, his cousin kept quiet for some reason. ¡°What¡¯s up, Zack? I can¡¯t guess what¡¯s going on in your head. You¡¯re making me nervous.¡± With his mind harking back to his recent job progress, Callum was sure he cleared his work without problems at all. It gave him a bit of confidence. ¡°Nothing much. Just sit there.¡± Callum was at a loss for words. Knock, knock. ¡°Come in.¡± Swinging the door open, Mr. Chaplin stepped into the office and courteously uttered, ¡°Mr. Newman is here, sir.¡± He then turned his body sideways and beckoned Mr. Newman to enter. Mr. Newman gave Mr. Chaplin a nod before walking into Zachary¡¯s office, bearing a gift. Mr. Newman came into the office all smiles. ¡°Mr. Zachary. Mr. Callum,¡± Mr. Newman pleasantly greeted the cousins. Mr. Chaplin took the gift from Mr. Newman and ced it on the coffee table before pouring Mr. Newman a drink. Since his cousin remained still, Callum got up and politely brought Mr. Newman to the sofa in the guest sitting area. Zachary only rose to his feet and walked around his desk after Mr. Chaplin gave Mr. Newman a drink and exited the office. Zachary drew close and took a seat opposite Mr. Newman. Once seated, he looked Mr. Newman in the eyes. ¡°What do you want, Mr. Newman?¡± His voice was husky and curt. Chapter 1014 Chapter 1014 Chapter 1014 It had longe to Mr. Newman¡¯s attention that Zachary was aloof and not the easiest to get on with. It was too early for Mr. Newman to say if he could get along with Zachary. Nevertheless, it was true that Zachary was an indifferent man. Mr. Newman had been around the business world for many years, and during his management of Newman Enterprise for more than a decade had turned a small business into a billion-dor corporation. Although the Newmans thrived in foreign business, Mr. Newman had influence and connections in Wiltspoon too. ¡°Mr. Zachary, I¡¯m here to apologize on behalf of my daughter and wife,¡± Mr. Newman exined with a smile. Zachary callously replied, ¡°I¡¯ve never met your wife and daughter.¡± ¡°Here¡¯s the thing, Mr. Zachary. My wife and daughter got into a bit of a misunderstanding and conflict with your wife. I have given them a telling-off, but since my wife has to take care of my sick daughter, I¡¯m here on behalf of them to apologize to your wife. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to intrude on your wife without your permission, so I came here to consult with you. Can I make a personal apology to your wife? I¡¯m sorry. My deepest apologies.¡± Zachary was very protective of Serenity. The media would not be so bold as to pester Serenity to this day. The asional pictures of Serenity were taken in secret. Even so, no one would post the photos on the web without Zachary knowing about it.. Callum was confused by the conversation. Why did Zack call him here when Mr. Newman stepped on Serenity¡¯s toes? ¡°No need for a personal apology. Just watch your wife and daughter. My wife took a liking to Ms. Camryn and is looking to be friends with her.¡± Enough was said-Serenity butted into the Newmans¡¯ business to take Camryn¡¯s side and Nana thought Camryn would be perfect for Callum. Nevertheless, Mrs. Newman and Carrie would not take Serenity¡¯s words to heart as Serenity did not carry any influence yet. In fact, it gave Mrs. Newman and Carrie ammo to pick on Camryn. Zachary was sending a clear message to Mr. Newman that Camryn was off-limits. It might put Camryn in a better situation. By now, Callum had an idea of what was going on. So, Mr. Newman was Camryn¡¯s stepfather and uncle. Zack called Callum here not to talk about work, but to let him know about Camryn¡¯s predicament¡­ Callum had mixed feelings about the whole thing. Uff, it was going to be a pain. Kevin lost it when he and Callum got the photographs of their potential wives from Grandma May. Refucing to take his nana seriously, Kevin nearly burned the photo but was stopped by Callum. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only There was no point burning the photos when their nana had made her strike. She kept copies, so there was no escaping. Callum had sarcastically told Kevin then, ¡°I dare you to run away from home, and don¡¯te back so long as Nana is alive.¡± Running away from home was not an option. Plus, Zachary would break his legs if Kevin was ever found. Although Kevin was not pleased that Grandma May had selected a tomboy for him, he loved his nana dearly. It was insolent to stay away from home instead of being by his nana¡¯s side during herst days. Grandma May gave them a year anyway. The York boys were not in a rush. s, Zack poked his nose in this. ¡°Camryn is lucky that your wife looks favorably on her.¡± Mr. Newman bore a smile on his face, but Zachary could tell the fakeness from a mile away. Truth be told, Mr. Newman was livid. Sure, Camryn was an heiress of the Newman family, but everybody knew that she was a fatherless wretch. She was a nobody in the Newman household, and even the maids gave her an attitude. The fact that Mrs. York wanted to befriend Camryn was not music to Mr. Newman¡¯s ears. He believed Camryn stole the glory that belonged to his daughter. Mrs. York should be getting along with his younger daughter instead. Despite his annoyance, Mr. Newman did not show it on his face and said nice things about Camryn. After speaking well of Camryn, Mr. Newman added, ¡°Camryn is a nice girl, but she¡¯s lost her sense of sight. There are a lot of inconveniences thate with blindness, so her interaction with your wife might be¡­¡± He left his words hanging there. Chapter 1015 Chapter 1015 Chapter 1015 Keeping to himself, Zachary simply stared icily at Mr. Newman while Mr. Newman was on pins and needles. ¡°So, your purpose here is to apologize, am I right, Mr. Newman?¡± Unable to count on Zack to say something, Callum broke the silence in the office. Mr. Newman nodded his head. ¡°Serenity is a forgiving person. She usually doesn¡¯t sweat the small stuff, but friendship is important to her.¡± Carrying a smile, Mr. Newman replied, ¡°Mrs. York got a heart for sure. I¡¯ve heard of it.¡± ¡°It¡¯s good that you know that. You can leave if there¡¯s nothing else, Mr. Newman.¡± Quit the act already. The Yorks and the Newmans had no business connections with one another. Mr. Newman had been wanting to leave the moment he came in. However, he was not in a position to take leave. God knew how nervous Mr. Newman was when Zachary locked eyes with him. He was a lot older than Zachary and probably could be Zachary¡¯s father. Mr. Newman had been through the toughest years of his life, but he felt small in Zachary¡¯s presence. With Callum showing him the door, Mr. Newman excused himself. The York boys did not get up to see Mr. Newman off. Callum merely told Mr. Chaplin to walk with Mr. Newman to the door. Once Mr. Newman was gone, Callum asked, ¡°How did Serenity get involved with Camryn and into a fight with Mrs. Newman?¡± ¡°It happenedst night.¡± Zachary recounted the whole incident to Callum and added, ¡°Serenity must have seen Camryn¡¯s photo and knew that she¡¯s your future wife. That would exin her involvement in the matter.¡± After a pause, Zachary said, ¡°But Seren¡¯s the type to stand up against injustice anyway. She would stop the drugging even if she didn¡¯t know who Camryn was.¡± Serenity could not step aside and remain uninvolved in such situations. Callum was speechless. ¡°I¡¯ve never met Camryn in person, Zack. She¡¯s not my wife!¡± Zachary stared at him without a word. Callum dejectedly uttered, ¡°I don¡¯t know how Nana chooses the women for us. Out of all the beautiful ladies, she picked a blind girl for me.¡± ¡°That¡¯s someone with a story worth discovering.¡± Callum replied, ¡°You have be poetic since you married your wife.¡± Zachary grinned. ¡°You called me up here to listen to the gossip. What do you want me to do about it?¡± ¡°Protect your own woman. Don¡¯t expect my wife to help you.¡± ¡°I told you, Zack. Camryn is not my wife! Nana picked her for me. Must I marry her?¡± As a person who had gone through it before, Zachary remarked, ¡°Don¡¯t speak too soon, Callum. You might end up eating your words. Take it from me.¡± Zachary was the expert at having the truth blowing up in his face and shooting himself in the foot. Callum opened his mouth, but no words escaped his lips. It took a while before Callum pursed his lips and said, ¡°I¡¯ll drop by Urban Roundabout since tomorrow¡¯s the weekend. What¡¯s her flower shop called again?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Zachary was blunt with his answer. It was not like Camryn was his potential wife. How was he supposed to know the name of Camryn¡¯s flower shop? Camryn would be practically non-existent to Zachary if his wife was not being nosy and lending Camryn a hand. ¡°Look it up if you want to know.¡± Callum was lost for words. ¡°It¡¯s over now. Go back to your work.¡± Leaving Camryn¡¯s matter in Callum¡¯s hands, Zachary chased Callum back to work. With Callum out of the way, Zachary threw himself into intense work. He was lost in his work pile to look at the time. Serenity had to pull him out of work and force him to rest and eat when she arrived with his packed lunch. Time slipped by unconsciously at the busiest moments.R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Chapter 1016 Chapter 1016 Chapter 1016 It appeared the sun had set seconds after it rose. The switch between daylight and darkness simply crept in on everybody. Serenity woke up bright early on Saturday morning. Zachary only got up when Serenity had breakfast on the table. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you wait for me to get up and make breakfast together?¡± Looming from behind Serenity, Zachary wrapped his arms around her. He loved the days of seeing her the moment he opened his eyes. He could find happiness in the most mundane days. All the fights, silent treatments, and misunderstandings taught Zachary to cherish everything he had. ¡°I woke up without the rm, but you were still asleep. I don¡¯t see the point of waking you to make breakfast. It doesn¡¯t matter who makes the breakfast.¡± Serenity turned around in his arms and lifted her chin to meet him face-to-face. With adoration in her eyes, she curled her lips. ¡°Good morning, babe.¡± Coming to her eye level, Zachary tenderly responded, ¡°Good morning, honey.¡± He then kissed her lips. The doorbell rang. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Pushing him away, Serenity said, ¡°It must be my sister.¡± Aunt Audrey and Elisa would give Serenity a call if they wereing. ¡°I¡¯ll open the door.¡± Zachary uttered as he made his way to the door. Standing at the door were Liberty and her son. ¡°Liberty.¡± Zachary affectionately said hello before picking Sonny up. Zachary grinned from ear to ear. ¡°Do you miss your Uncle Zack, Sonny?¡± ¡°I do,¡± Sonny answered in a soft voice and propped against Zachary¡¯s shoulder. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with Sonny? Is he sick?¡± The little man was without his usual friendly self. Thinking that Sonny was unwell, Zachary felt his head. Sonny did not have a temperature. Liberty stepped into the house and replied, ¡°Sonny was still asleep when I was leaving the house. He¡¯s still out of it since I woke him up and brought him here.¡± Feeling at ease, Zachary carried Sonny inside the apartment. ¡°You can rest in the car on the way there.¡± It would be at least a fifty-mile drive from the city to the Hunts¡¯ hometown. ¡°Breakfast is ready, Liberty.¡± Serenity emerged from the dining room. Seeing that her nephew was listless, she took Sonny from her husband and said, ¡®Liberty, why don¡¯t you get a car? At least, Sonny can take naps during car rides. It¡¯ll Chapter shelter him from the wind and storm too.¡± ¡°Do you have oats?¡± Liberty asked her sister. ¡°Well, we¡¯ll see how business goes after the opening on Monday. I¡¯ll ride your e-bike if the business doesn¡¯t pick up. I know it¡¯s time to get a car when business is good.¡± ¡°I have a lot of cars in the garage. You can pick whichever.¡± ¡°I¡¯m good. My rental house is not too far from the diner.¡± Zachary drove luxury cars, so Liberty would be looking at a heft bill if she took one out and bumped into anyone¡¯s car. Her brother-inw would refuse to take her money too. All the favors simply did not sit right with Liberty. Hence the reason for her turning down the kind gesture. Liberty could afford a car in the range of a hundred thousand dors, but she did not see the need right now. She wanted to practice caution and see how the business would take off beforehand. Knowing her sister well, Serenity did not pursue the topic. She carried Sonny into the dining room and sat Sonny down at the table. She made a full English breakfast of toast, ham, eggs, and roasted potatoes. Sonny had a thing for potatoes. The lot got a call from Elisa when they finished their breakfast. With a convoy of Zachary¡¯s security detail, they took a ride in Zachary¡¯s car and met up with Mrs. Stone at themunity entrance before making their way to the Hunts¡¯ hometown. Chapter 1017 Chapter 1017 Chapter 1017 Serenity, Liberty, Mrs. Stone, and the others were on their way to the Hunts¡¯ hometown when Old Mr. Hunt brought his sons and two grandsons to Wiltspoon School. Here they were to talk cash with Serenity again. Old Mr. Hunt refused to believe the Yorks were unfazed by all the big hoo-ha the Hunts stirred in the last few days. Serenity might be feeling the pressure now. s, they arrived at Wiltspoon School only to find that Serenity¡¯s bookshop was closed. ¡°Why isn¡¯t it operating for business? It¡¯s eight o¡¯clock. It says here they open at eight.¡± Getting out of the car, Old Mr. Hunt grimaced upon noticing the shop was closed. He ran his mouth and called Serenity out for being a lousy businessperson. Mike looked at the shops around and said, ¡°Granddad, it¡¯s Saturday today. The school is off. These shops target students as customers. They won¡¯t bother opening when the school is closed.¡± Old Mr. Hunt mumbled, ¡°The brat usually stays open on the weekend. She thinks she¡¯s all that now that she¡¯s the wife of a wealthy man. I bet the profit of this shop isn¡¯t much to her now. Mike, maybe we can change the ns and get her to give you the business if the brat refuses to relent.¡± 1 ¡°Serenity established the shop with her friend, Granddad. She could only afford a business because of her friend. The Sox girles from a well-to-do family. I heard that the Sox family makes their money off collecting rent. Apparently, her aunt is the wife of some local businessman. The whole family is pretty business-minded.¡± There was no way they could take over Serenity¡¯s book-selling business. ¡°God knows why the brat is so lucky.¡± R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only The public was not the only one jealous of Serenity¡¯s good fortune. Her own grandfather could not stand to see her livingrge. So what if Serenity married well? She refused to share the fortune with her family. ¡°Since she¡¯s not open for business, should we head to your house then?¡± Old Mr. Hunt asked John as John was his favorite grandson. Old Mr. Hunt often asked for John¡¯s opinion before doing anything. His sons were merely here to make up for the headcount. It was power in numbers after all. The rest of the family had returned to their hometown. It was a huge expense for everybody to stay in the city. Even though Old Mr. Hunt did not have to cover the expenses, he felt the pinch for his sons and grandsons¡¯ wallets. Old Mr. Hunt did not want to spend too much of their money back when they were still working, much less now that they were eating away their savings. That was why Old Mr. Hunt thought about Serenity and Liberty when his spouse needed to have surgery in the city. Why spend his sons and grandsons¡¯ money when he could spend Liberty and Serenity¡¯s? To Old Mr. Hunt, his sons and grandsons were family. Their money was his money. His granddaughters would marry into other families and their money was their husbands¡¯ money. Why should Old Mr. Hunt care? Old Mr. Hunt wanted to manipte Serenity and her sister since they were doing well in life. However, the n backfired and blew up in their faces. Not only did they fail to get anything out of the sisters, his sons and grandsons lost their sources of ie. He hated the sisters¡¯ guts for that, especially Serenity. She married into a wealthy family, and her in- laws were loaded. Why could she not spare them some change? A bit of change went a long way. What was the point of having a granddaughter when she could not include her family in all the money and sess? Old Mr. Hunt hoped to drive Zachary and Serenity to divorce. He wanted Serenity to lose everything. He also wished Harriet¡¯s stic surgery would go well, so thetter could take Serenity¡¯s ce. ¡°She lives in a gatedmunity. We can¡¯t get in. She might be staying in some vi right now, and God knows which one. Mr. York owns a lot of properties.¡± Old Mr. Hunt turned green with envy at the mention of Zachary¡¯s multiple properties. Although his son had built a nice estate in his hometown, the rural buildings could notpare to the structures in the city. They had caused a scene at Wildridge Manor. Although the Hunts could not enter the residence, they caught a glimpse of the manor through the gaps in the gate. The ce was huge and beautiful. Old Mr. Hunt was envious as he imagined himself living there. Chapter 1018 Chapter 1018 Chapter 1018 ¡°Never mind. Let¡¯s go after Liberty. What line of business is she in?¡± ¡°F&B, breakfast ce.¡± ¡°Oh, right. A breakfast diner. We can have free breakfast at her ce then.¡± After finding out that Liberty was starting a new business, Old Mr. Hunt ran his mouth about Liberty and her refusal to lend a million to his grandson to get back on his feet. If that was not enough, Old Mr. Hunt shot off at his dead son, Scott, for having two disloyal daughters. Serenity and Liberty would be the death of Old Mr. Hunt. Old Mr. Hunt returned to the car, urging his sons and grandsons to freeload off Liberty¡¯s new diner. They could enjoy meals at Liberty¡¯s ce whenever they came to the city. It was not like Liberty could do anything if they refused to pay. They were family after all! This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Old Mr. Hunt brought his sons and grandsons to Liberty¡¯s breakfast diner, only to find the ce shut. Seeing that the ce was not open for business, he stayed in the car and chided, ¡°Where the hell are these brats? None of them are operating. They might as well give you the business since they¡¯re not up for the work.¡± Mike and the others found it odd. It was normal for Serenity¡¯s bookstore not to be open on the weekend, but Liberty was a different story. Where did the sisters go? Serenity and Liberty had no idea that their money-hungry rtives were looking for them. They spent over an hour getting to their hometown. The heavy traffic on the road prolonged the journey. Looking at their parents¡¯ home from afar, Serenity and Liberty were lost in nostalgia. They recalled the family of four¡¯s happy times when Scott and Lisa were still around. Zachary brought his security detail along, and so did Mrs. Stone. Since everybody was keeping an eye out for any dispute, it was the safer option to be surrounded by security. Not a lot of cars could be parked on the driveway, so some of the vehicles were moved to the town square. Serenity could hear her grandmom¡¯s yelling when she got out of the car. ¡°Don¡¯t dump it here. This is my grandson¡¯s house. How can you say that the house belongs to those b* tches? Move your car right now and take away the bricks and gravel along with you!¡± Serenity had made prior arrangements with the truck drivers to move truckloads of bricks, gravel, and sand to her parents¡¯ home. Now that the truck drivers were here, Old Mrs. Hunt was stopping them from dumping the construction materials in front of her gate. Old Mrs. Hunt did not hold back on the profanity when she found out Serenity was behind this. Known to have a nasty attitude in town, Old Mrs. Hunt could shout loud enough for the whole neighborhood to hear. Her daughter-inw and other grandsons heard themotion and came to take a stand with Old Mrs. Hunt. Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s voice attracted other nosy neighbors out of their houses. They asked around and approached Serenity¡¯s family home, trying to get to the bottom of things. ¡°Are Serenity and Liberty back to redo the house?¡± ¡°Mrs. Deli would know. We should ask her.¡± ¡°I heard they¡¯re back to rebuild their parents¡¯ house. The girls have found their feet, so they came back to take back the house.¡± Serenity¡¯s home was built on spaciousnd, but thend did note entirely from Old Mr. Hunt. Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt yed favorites, and for the least favorite son, they split a measly 400 sq ft to Serenity¡¯s father. Scott and Lisa bought the wastnd from others and switched farnd with neighbors to make up for thend the family owned now. Chapter 1019 Chapter 1019 Chapter 1019 ¡°Serenity is now the wife of the richest man. Why would she want the house? That¡¯s a bit greedy.¡± Some people were of the opinion that Serenity should not fight for the house. Someone immediately came to Serenity¡¯s defense. ¡°She should fight for the house after what her grandparents did to her and her sister. Why should John get the house for free?¡± ¡°I thought John is Scott¡¯s adopted son?¡± Scott¡¯s name was only known among the seniors and Scott¡¯s generation. The younger generation would not know who Scott, Serenity, or Liberty was. Well, the Hunts were the main reason for that. They went so far as to stop Serenity and her sister from coming back to town. The Hunt family even relocated Scott¡¯s and Lisa¡¯s graves without letting the sisters know. Serenity and Liberty could not even visit their parents¡¯ graves even if they wanted to. Thest time Serenity came back, the Hunts were not home. She ended up having a chat with her fellow townspeople. Mrs. Deli jumped in, ¡°Scott and Lisa never mentioned adopting John when they were alive. The adoption only came about after they died, and the Hunt family kicked Scott and Lisa¡¯s daughters out. The Hunt family is clearly trying to take possession of Scott¡¯s property. Did the adoption papers even go through?¡± ¡°Why is John calling Chris Dad if he is Scott¡¯s adopted son? Chris should be his uncle then.¡± Everybody was at a loss for words. They were cognizant that Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt¡¯s favorite golden offspring was their grandson, John because the boy was the most capable of all. Even though John came back once a year to visit the old folks, they doted on their grandson. Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt upied Scott¡¯s house, vacant residentialnd, and farnd to give to John. John had a younger brother. Old Mr. Hunt said that he would have Serenity¡¯s family home demolished andbined with the emptynd next to it to build a vi. That way, John and his brother would not have to fight over a house. ¡°John has been diligent to visit Scott¡¯s and Lisa¡¯s graves every day. He has done his duty as a son, so he has the right to Scott¡¯s inheritance. Serenity and Liberty have married into other families. They have their own families now, so whye back and fight for the inheritance?¡± Old Mrs. Hunt was making a huge fuss. Walking behind the crowd, Serenity, Liberty, and their entourage heard Old Mrs. Hunt, and everything became clear to them. There was a reason the Hunts relocated Scott¡¯s and Lisa¡¯s graves without telling the sisters. It was so John could fulfill his obligation as a ¡°son¡± and earn the right to inherit their parents¡¯ inheritance. ¡°Tell me. Doesn¡¯t the inheritance go to the sons? Did your married daughters fight your sons for their shares of the inheritance?¡± Old Mrs. Hunt questioned the onlooking townspeople. The town the Hunt family lived in had a local custom of leaving the family possession to the sons as the sons were the primary carers of their elders. The daughters would only drop in for a visit every so often. Those without sons could have their sons-inw take their family name, but it was a less favorable move. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Some people would somehow see their nephews as immediate family and rather bequeath the family fortune to their nephews than their daughters. The jokes were on them as these nephews could not care less when age got the better of the elders. The seniors would still end up in their daughters¡¯ care. These nephews believed the seniors had daughters who could take care of them. This was what happened to parents who saw their nephews as family and daughters as outsiders. Of course, many families blessed with only daughters managed to break free from the feudal system, leaving all inheritance to their daughters. They even sorted out their wills early on to make sure their daughters were covered for life. Some people were just different. Chapter 1020 Chapter 1020 Chapter 1020 Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s rhetorical question silenced some of the families with sons. ¡°It¡¯s an unwritten rule that the family fortune goes to the sons in this town, and the sons will handle the final days of the parents. I know that, but my parents didn¡¯t have a son. They only had me and my sister. My parents¡¯ inheritance should be passed down to me and my sister. ¡°Grandmom, can you tell me when my parents adopted a son? Did the adoption go through while they were alive? Can we see the papers? ¡°We have never been notified of any change to our family tree,¡± raising her voice, Serenity questioned Old Mrs. Hunt. The onlookers turned their heads to the source of the questioning. With Serenity walking alongside Zachary in the protection of men in ck, the crowd cleared a path toward the gate of Serenity¡¯s family home. Liberty left Sonny in Jim¡¯s care, so the boy could have a little y nearby. She did not want Sonny to see her arguing with the olddy. Escorted by a team of security, Mrs. Stone and her daughter followed Serenity and her husband in the back. Mrs. Stone did not look too happy. She spent decades tracking her sister down, but a car ident sixteen years ago took her sister¡¯s life. Fortunately, her sister was survived by two daughters. Since Liberty took after her mother, Mrs. Stone could find sce when she stared at Liberty. Mrs. Stone wanted to see the ce her sister used to live and visit her grave to have a moment with her. As her nieces had no idea where their parents¡¯ graves were relocated to, Mrs. Stone had not been able to realize this dream. Mrs. Stone had given her full support to her nieces to take back their parents¡¯ possessions. Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s words only made Mrs. Stone¡¯s blood boil. Both her sister and her husband had worked hard to build the house. Yet, these people took advantage of her nieces¡¯ young ages, inexperience, and absence of power to upy the house. The Hunts kicked the children out of the house and town. Now that Serenity and her sister were back for the house, the old hag was yakking about her sister¡¯s adopted son being the rightful owner. It was a tant move to take possession of the house. Mrs. Stone decided to get the whereabouts of Lisa¡¯s and Scott¡¯s graves out of them. As for the estate, there was no point arguing. The best way was to go to court. The Stones and the Yorks were more than capable to help the sisters repossess their family home. ¡°Liberty and Serenity are back.¡± The onlookers recognized Serenity because thetter hadest year to refute the damaging ims of their grandparents. She had met with everybody in town. Liberty, having lost a lot of weight, was a spitting image of her mother. ¡°Liberty looks more and more like Lisa every day.¡± Howden was Lisa¡¯s maiden name and the family name of her adoptive parents. Lisa had another name before the adoption, and the only person who knew her name was Mrs. Stone.R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only Chapter 1021 Chapter 1021 Chapter 1021 ¡°Serenity, Liberty, you came back just in time. What¡¯s this about? I¡¯m telling you, the moment you left this house and this town, the house and fields belonged to us. ¡°My son left this house for us. The property belongs to us, so we can give it to whoever we want, but we won¡¯t give it to you since you¡¯re married into other families.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt felt slightly guilty when she saw the sisters bringing many people over. When she was in the hospital, she had heard about how incredible Serenity had be. Now, she also knew that Serenity soared to the top and became the missus of a wealthy family. This made Old Mrs. Hunt a little guilty. After all, she and her husband had forcibly upied the house. Back then, taking advantage of the fact that the sisters were still underage and incapable, she even kicked them out. Serenity was only about twelve years old when she and her sister were booted out. After Serenity and Liberty were thrown out of the house, they would return to the town in the first few years to visit their parents¡¯ graves. They also tried to live in their parents¡¯ house again but were beaten and scolded by their grandparents with thick canes. The sisters were hit so hard that they did not dare return for a few years. The two parties lost contact after that. It was not until Liberty was getting married did her grandparents receive the news and shamelessly ask the Browns for a betrothal gift of 300,000 dors. Even so, Liberty refused and disallowed the Browns from fulfilling the request. She also shooed her grandparents away. Following that, there was no news from their grandparents for about three more years. When Old Mrs. Hunt fell ill, nobody wanted to pay for the medical expenses, so they remembered Serenity and Liberty. They thought the sisters were doing well, so they reconnected with them. Old Mrs. Hunt knew they had gone too far and that the people in town could not stand them. That said, those people did not dare offend her because she was feisty, shameless, and immoral. Now that her interests were involved, Old Mrs. Hunt unleashed her shamelessness to the fullest again. ¡°I¡¯ve never seen married daughters returning to their parents¡¯ home to fight for a house,¡± Old Mrs. Hunt muttered. When she was coldly stared at by Zachary, she stopped yelling and mumbled softly instead. She even stuck out her chest to boost her confidence. She was not afraid. So what if Serenity¡¯s husband was the eldest son of the richest family? Could he take her house away by force? In any case, this was Scott¡¯s house. Scott was Old Mrs, Hunt¡¯s son, and it was only right for the mother to inherit her son¡¯s property. ¡°Grandmom, tell me, who did my parents adopt as their son when they were still around? You were shouting that this is your grandson¡¯s house. Which grandson of yours owns this ce? ¡°My sister and I have the right to inherit our parents¡¯ house. We¡¯ll fight for it if it¡¯s ours and we don¡¯t want any of it if it¡¯s not, but we won¡¯t yield if it belongs to us!¡± Serenity coldly refuted Old Mrs. Hunt. She even nced at the others before approaching the truck driver and ordering, ¡°Mr. Driver, dump this truck of bricks there. There¡¯s an open space there.¡± She instructed the truck driver to dump the bricks on the empty spot to the right of the entrance, which Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. was also her family¡¯s ce. When Serenity and Liberty¡¯s parents were still alive, they told the sisters to buy more housingnd. The sisters would build two houses on thend when they grew up, so they could be neighbors who lived together. By having each other¡¯spany, they could also support each other and would not be bullied by the townspeople. ¡°You¡¯re not allowed to dump them here. You¡¯re not allowed to-this is my house!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt saw what was happening and immediately rushed over. She stood in the middle of the open space and spread her arms as she shouted, ¡°Which one of you dare dump those bricks here? Crush me here if you dare!¡± Zachary waved his hand. Following that, two bodyguards walked over and held Old Mrs. Hunt on each side. They took her away. ¡°What are you doing? What are you doing? Let go of me!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt struggled desperately. Chapter 1022 Chapter 1022 Chapter 1022 Unfortunately, Old Mrs. Hunt was only an old woman. She could not break free from the two bodyguards that were holding her. The two bodyguards did not harm her and only took her away. When the other members of the Hunts saw what was happening, they quickly rushed over. Nheless, both the Yorks¡¯ and Stones¡¯ security teams also moved forward simultaneously to block them out, disallowing them from getting close. ¡°They hit me, they hit me!¡± Seeing as they were outnumbered, Old Mrs. Hunt plopped to the ground as soon as her feet touched the earth. She pped her thigh while shouting that she was being hit. Despite that, the people in town only gathered to watch and did not get close. Someone was also taking videos of them. The crowd could see the truth for themselves. They saw clearly that the people brought by Serenity only carried Old Mrs. Hunt away and did not hurt her at all. Old Mrs. Hunt was probably trying to me the other party. The person recording the video thought he ought to film the whole thing so when Old Mrs. Hunt and her family tried to distort the truthter on, he would release the video for everyone to see. This was so they could avoid what happenedst year, where things were turned upside down and two orphans were harmed. Under Serenity¡¯smand, truckloads of bricks, sand, and gravel were dumped in front of her house¡¯s open space. In actuality, Serenity knew once they were to leave town, the outrageous people in her hometown would move the building materials away. It would not matter regardless-she was only using this to kick off her fight for the house. ¡°Quick, call your granddad and the others.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt pped her thigh so hard that it turned red, but no one in town stood up for her. She stopped pping her thigh and got up from the ground. While patting the mud and dust off her pants, she shouted at her grandchildren. She asked them to call their husbands, as well as her eldest sons and grandsons to hurry home. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. In their big family, Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s eldest two grandsons were the most powerful. Noah was in the crowd. He wanted to step forward but remembered how powerful Serenity was, so he stopped in his tracks and did not dare rush to the fore. Besides, Serenity came prepared today. Zachary¡¯s bodyguards were all tall and fierce. They were first- ss in boxing. Mrs. Stone had also brought the most powerful bodyguards here. As such, Noah was even more afraid of standing up for his grandmom. He shrank behind his mother and watched his elders argue with his cousins. ¡°Liberty, Serenity, you¡¯re unfilial granddaughters-you¡¯re very unfilial! Everyone,e and look at my unfilial granddaughters. It¡¯s fine that they¡¯re not paying to support me now that I¡¯m old, but now that they know I¡¯m sick, they¡¯re hoping that I¡¯ll die soon. They came back to rob me of my house! ¡°Why wouldn¡¯t lightning strike my unfilial granddaughters to death?! God, open your eyes and see. I have two unfilial granddaughters here. They don¡¯t give me money, they don¡¯t support me, and they don¡¯t pay for my medical expenses when I¡¯m sick. Now, they¡¯re snatching my house and kicking me out! ¡°God, pleasee and strike them with lightning. They¡¯re too unfilial. They deserve to die!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt kept cursing. Serenity walked over. Old Mrs. Hunt was shocked, so she took two steps back and questioned her defensively, ¡°W-what are you going to do? Did I say anything wrong? You¡¯re unfilial!¡± Chapter 1023 Chapter 1023 Chapter 1023 Serenity sneered, ¡°When my parents just died 16 years ago, we got 1.2 million dors inpensation. You and Granddad along with your children and grandchildren crowded our house to the point where we didn¡¯t even have a ce to stand. ¡°You forced me and my sister to hand over the money, saying that you had a share of it. It¡¯s true that you and Granddad had a share of the money, but how much did you take? ¡°Back then, in order to get more money from my parents¡¯ insurance payout, you stated that Liberty and I don¡¯t need to support you on behalf of our father while you¡¯re alive, and that we don¡¯t need to hold funerals for you when you pass. We don¡¯t need to sustain you in life and bury you in death. It was written in ck and white.. ¡°Perhaps you¡¯ve destroyed your copy, but the other copy is well-kept by Liberty. I believe the town committee has also kept a copy. The townspeople who were witnesses are still here today. Should we ask them to confront you? ¡°Does the house belong to you? My dad¡¯s name is still written on the title deed. You and Granddad indeed have a share of what my parents left behind, but you can¡¯t inherit everything. Liberty and I have a share of those things too! ¡°As for what you said about adopting a son for my parents, did they agree to it? Has John called my parents Dad and Mom? He¡¯s still calling his parents Dad and Mom! Did you think that by stopping us from visiting our parents¡¯ graves and letting him pay his respect to them every year qualify him for the entirety of my parents¡¯ inheritance? ¡°In your dreams!¡± Serenity added coldly, ¡°Grandmom, go ahead and call Granddad and the others back. Liberty and I returned today for our parents¡¯ inheritance. Call them back so we can split everything clearly! ¡°Again, we won¡¯t yield if they belong to us, and we won¡¯t fight for what doesn¡¯t belong to us!¡± ¡°Serenity!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt jumped in anger. She pointed at Serenity and cursed, ¡°You¡¯re daughters. What right do daughters have to inherit a family¡¯s property? Your father was my son. Since he passed away, his family property is ours! ¡°Get out of here! What right do married daughters have toe back to their parents¡¯ home to fight for their family property? Are you not ashamed of yourselves? In any case, your father is dead. Everything he left behind is mine. I¡¯m not afraid of the people you brought. You can¡¯t take the house away unless you beat us to our deaths! ¡°What agreement? What money? My son died, so his insurance payout belongs to me and my husband. You were just little girls. We showed our mercy when we gave you 200,000 dors to live and not let you starve to death. ¡°I don¡¯t remember signing any agreement. You¡¯re extremely unfilial for not supporting me and paying for rny treatments. I¡¯m telling you, if you don¡¯t give us money, we¡¯ll haunt you even after we turn into ghosts!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt thought of the fact that Serenity was now the missus of the richest family and had lots of money, so she denied the agreement she had signed back then. She had long been shameless anyway She would strive to get some benefits for her grandsons first. As long as Serenity was willing to give her money, she would let her grandsons start their own businesses. Since Serenity¡¯s inws were very rich, it would not be a problem for her to give them a few million dors, right? Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Old Mrs. Hunt, that¡¯s not right. Back then, everyone in town knew about and witnessed the agreement you signed with Serenity and Liberty. The Howdens were present as well. Do you think you can deny it now?¡± The person who intervened was Mrs. Deli. She was the closest to Lisa. When Scott and Lisa passed away, Mrs. Deli sympathized with and pitied Liberty and Serenity. However, she was too weak to help them and could only watch them being shooed away. Chapter 1024 Chapter 1024 Chapter 1024 Now that Serenity and Liberty were capable enough toe back to reim their parents¡¯ property, Mrs. Deli fully supported them. ¡°Yeah, it was you who said that they don¡¯t need you to support you while you¡¯re alive or handle your funerals when you pass. You didn¡¯t raise them in the first ce, so how could you be so shameless as to ask them for money? Your sons and grandsons benefitted so much. Why don¡¯t you ask them for money instead? ¡°Your whole family made a fortune from taking advantage of their misfortune, yet you¡¯re bullying the orphaned girls. Your family has gone too far, so you should be struck by lightning instead. You¡¯re old now. How many more years can you live? You¡¯re not even afraid of going to the depths of hell after death, never to be reborn.¡± Even though the people in town opined that married daughters should not return home to fight for their family property, they felt that Old Mrs. Hunt and her people were too much. They could not help but intervene. ¡°They¡¯re all shameless people, to begin with. All of them are rich, live in big vis, and drive luxurious cars. John even has an annual sry of a million dors. When Old Mrs. Hunt was sick, none of them paid for the expenses and wanted Liberty and her sister to pay instead. ¡°They only reap the benefits and let the sisters bear responsibility when something is wrong. Do they take the sisters as fools?¡± Everyone in the Hunts¡¯ hometown knew about the scandal as a result of the trending topicst year. Many of them learned to surf the inte to support Serenity and her sister online. They exposed the cruelness and shamelessness of Old Mrs. Hunt and her family! Later, after learning that John and the others lost their jobs due to the backfire of the trending topic, the people in town felt that it was karma. ¡°Busybodies!¡± Liberty said loudly, ¡°The townspeople aren¡¯t being busybodies. They¡¯re righteous and are telling the truth!¡± Zachary silently stood by Serenity¡¯s side and quietly supported her without saying a word. Nheless, when he coldly stared at the Hunts with his sharp gaze, those people who usually rampaged in town felt guilty and did not dare talk too much. Old Mrs. Hunt was the only one who was taking advantage of her seniority, so she continued to make desperate struggles and yelled about. Her feistiness was useless against Serenity and the others. Mrs. Stone came forward and stood next to Serenity and her sister. Her gaze was cold as well. She had helped her husband manage Stone Group when she was young. Now, her strong legacy remained in Wiltspoon¡¯s business world. She was at the top for a long time. When she pulled a long face and deepened her gaze, her domineering aura was released. ¡°You can get a share of Scott¡¯s inheritance, but as inws, you have no rights to Lisa¡¯s inheritance. I¡¯m Lisa¡¯s elder sister. She was originally a Fisher but was adopted by the Howdens after some twists and turns, then she became the daughter-inw of the Hunts.¡± It was so unfortunate that Mrs. Stone¡¯s sister married into the Hunt family! Given how biased and shameless Lisa¡¯s inws were, Mrs. Stone wondered how much injustice she had suffered when she was still alive. Particrly, Lisa and Scott only gave birth to two daughters during those days when strict family nning and the patriarchal mindset were still reigning. Mrs. Stone could imagine her sister had had a hard time with the Hunts. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. ¡°I¡¯ve been looking for Lisa for decades. Now that I finally had news of her, I didn¡¯t think that¡­ This house was built after my sister and her husband after their marriage, so it¡¯s considered their joint property. You can only take a portion from the half of the property that belonged to your son, and you can¡¯t touch the half that belonged to my sister!¡± Chapter 1025 Chapter 1025 Chapter 1025 Mrs. Stone continued, ¡°I came here today not to quarrel with you. I¡¯m just here to apany my nieces, and I also want to see the ce my sister used to live By the way, there¡¯ll be less trouble if you move out voluntarily. If you don¡¯t, we¡¯ll sue you for the forced upation of someone¡¯s property. ¡°We¡¯ll get the house back even if we have to go to court. When the timees, we¡¯ll let the court rule how the property is going to be split! Don¡¯t you dream about upying what belongs to my nieces. Simrly, they won¡¯t take what doesn¡¯t belong to them.¡± The people from the Hunts¡¯ hometown exchanged looks. It turned out that Lisa¡¯s sister had found Serenity and Liberty. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. The Hunts knew that Mrs. Stone was Serenity¡¯s aunt, but of course, they would not spread this news in town. For the Hunts, it was bad for them that Lisa¡¯s sister recognized Serenity and her sister. Was John not a senior executive of a subsidiary of Stone Group? It was said that John had lost his job because he offended the Stones¡¯ precious daughter. He was fired from thepany where he was earning an annual sry of a million dors. Since then, John had not been able to find a job. Furthermore, it was also said that John wanted to go to York Corporation. He thought he was capable and hade from Stone Group, so he would join York Corporation to suppress Stone Group. Little did they know that the head of York Corporation was Serenity¡¯s husband. After hearing the gossip, the people in town thought that it was time for the Hunts to have bad luck and pay up. They had taken advantage of Scott and Lisa¡¯s misfortune for such a long time. Now that Lisa¡¯s maiden family was finally here, the Hunts would not have a good time. As long as Lisa¡¯s sister asked around in town, she would know how the Hunts used to bully Lisa together. Old Mr and Mrs. Hunt had six children-four sons and two daughters. They disliked Scott the most, but he was the most filial one of them all. Whenever they were in difort, he was always the one who took them to see a doctor. He spent money and put in effort for them. Lisa was also filial as a daughter-inw, but the old couple disliked her for not giving birth to a son. They despised her, bullied her, and even forced Scott to divorce her. Scott could not bear to divorce Lisa, nor could he let go of his daughters. It did not matter to him whether his children were male or female-he would love them the same. ¡°Let¡¯s go to court then! Let¡¯s see who¡¯s more afraid!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt shouted, ¡°My son¡¯s house is mine! ¡°Just because you say you¡¯re Lisa¡¯s sister, that¡¯s it? Did Lisa admit it? Don¡¯t think I¡¯ll be afraid of you just because you¡¯re rich and powerful. I¡¯m not afraid!¡± Old Mrs. Hunt pointed at Serenity and her sister and scolded them again, ¡°You unfilial granddaughters are really trying to infuriate me to my death. I¡¯m telling you, as long as I live, don¡¯t even think about building a house on my property! ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re so rich now, and yet you¡¯re back to fight for the house. You¡¯re simply rich but unkind. Your cousins lost their jobs due to your revenge, and they can¡¯t carry on their businesses anymore. Despite that, you¡¯re still not satisfied and want to take the house away. Can you be less shameless?¡± Old Mrs. Hunt grew furious as she spoke She even wanted to hit Serenity. Zachary¡¯s face darkened The Yorks bodyguards were ready to make a move. Noah suddenly jumped out and rushed forward to hug his grandmom. ¡°Grandmom, Grandmom, say all you want, but don¡¯t hit them! Don¡¯t hit them!¡± Serenity alone could take all of them down, much less Mr. York who was present with his bodyguards. Even if Noah faced her with his cousins, they would not be her match, let alone his aunt, his mother, and the others. The women were good at arguing and would not be defeated in fights against ordinary people, but they would be courting death if they fought someone like Serenity, who had learned martial arts! Noah, who had suffered losses from Serenity twice, was still afraid of her. ¡°Grandmom, you have no idea. Serenity is very skillful. I once brought a group of gangsters to give her some trouble, but they were all beaten up by her. On the other hand, she was unharmed.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt was speechless. Yes, she recalled what happened. Chapter 1026 Chapter 1026 Chapter 1026 It wasst year. Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s little grandson brought a group of people to stop Serenity¡¯s car because she refused to pay for the medical bill. They wanted to teach her a lesson but ended up being badly beaten by her. The little grandson was even sent to the police station to be detained for fifteen days. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only On the other hand, nothing happened to Serenity It was Serenity who had beaten them up. However, the people at the police station said that it was justifiable self-defense. Old Mrs. Hunt was heartbroken when she learned that her little grandson was beaten up by Serenity and detained. She hated Serenity terribly ¡°Mom, let¡¯s wait for Dad toe back.¡± ¡°Grandmom, stay calm, stay calm.¡± The others also persuaded Old Mrs. Hunt. They were unreasonable, to begin with. Old Mrs. Hunt was rude and unreasonable, but it was useless against Mr. Zachary, Mrs. Stone, and the rest who had power and status. Mrs. Stone had said that she would go to court for this. Perhaps Old Mrs. Hunt did not know thew, but the others in her family did. Once awsuit was engaged, they would not have a chance to win. Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt would be able to get a share of Scott¡¯s inheritance, but they would not be able to have full possession of the house. If Old Mrs. Hunt was to make a move and Serenity pursued the matter, she would even have to compensate Serenity for it. Serenity would not be gentle on them at all, let alone let them off for old times¡¯ sake. After all, they often bullied Serenity in the past. Liberty lived in school once she was in junior high, whereas Serenity stayed with her parents and went to elementary school. Their cousins often went after Serenity to bully her. When Lisa was still alive, she also quarreled a lot with her sisters-inw to stand up for her daughter. ¡°Serenity, Grandmom is old and doesn¡¯t know anything, so she speaks impulsively. Please don¡¯t quarrel with her. It¡¯s rare for you toe home, so why don¡¯t you swing by my ce and have some coffee?¡± Seeing as he managed to persuade his grandmom, Noah smiled tteringly at Serenity and invited her to his ce ¡°Liberty, Serenity, no matter what, we¡¯re a family. Your parents aren¡¯t around anymore, but since you¡¯re back, treat our home as yours. Come, let¡¯s go to your uncle¡¯s house. You haven¡¯t eaten breakfast since you came so early, right? Should I make something for you?¡± Stuart¡¯s wife saw that Noah wanted to invite Serenity and Liberty to his ce and did not want tog behind. She also softened her tone and smiled as she invited the sisters to her ce instead. Serenity and her sister had strong backing now, so they would not be able to gain anything if they fought fire with fire. Since they could not do it the hard way, they would take a softer approach, as long as they calmed Serenity down for the time being. After Harriet finished her stic surgery and imitated Serenity¡¯s speech and behavior, they would move on to the next step by making Harriet rece Serenity officially. That way, their whole family would be able to follow Harriet to live a good life with the richest family. A rich and powerful family with a worth of a hundred billion dors! The thought of the Yorks being such a family made the Hunts envious. They wished they were younger so that they couldpete with Serenity. Chapter 1027 Chapter 1027 Chapter 1027 Old Mrs. Hunt saw that her daughters-inw and grandchildren were inviting Serenity to their houses. Plus, she had been making a scene for so long, but instead of gaining anything, she became a joke to the people in her hometown. She decided to ease her expression and said, ¡°Liberty, Serenity, your aunt is right. At the end of the day, we¡¯re a family. If anything, let¡¯s sit down and talk. ¡°I don¡¯t want to argue with you anymore We¡¯ll wait for your granddad and the others toe back so they can talk to you. No matter what, this house is mine.¡± Serenity sneered, ¡°I don¡¯t want to argue or fight with you as well, Grandmom. Let¡¯s meet in court.¡± Going to court was to determine their shares of the inheritance. In Audrey¡¯s words, this house was a joint property of her parents after their marriage-half belonged to her mother while the other half to her father This house covered an area of 1,100 square feet. Half of it belonged to their mother whereas the other half belonged to their father was to be equally shared among the sisters and the two elders, meaning the two eldersbined could only get 275 square feet of the house. As for Lisa¡¯s share, if the Howdens, her adoptive parents, relinquished their rights, then it would belong to the sisters and have nothing to do with Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt. I don¡¯t need your hospitality either. This is our house, and I¡¯m going back to my house.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. As Serenity spoke, she took Zachary¡¯s hand and led him into the house her parents had worked hard to build back then. This was her home. She was young in the past and could not protect the property her parents left behind. As a result, her grandparents forcibly upied it and shooed her and her sister away. Standing in front of the house, Serenity looked at everything inside. Many things were still what her parents had bought when they were still around. Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt lived here, but they were too lazy to spend money to rece the items. Liberty brought Mrs. Stone and Elisa into the house. Old Mrs. Hunt wanted to stop them but was stopped by Noah. Noah pulled her grandmom, far away from everyone, before saying to her, ¡°Grandmom, Serenity is very powerful. She knows kickboxing. Don¡¯t mess with her anymore. She doesn¡¯t buy this. ¡°Those people she brought aren¡¯t to be messed with either. Grandmom, let them go in and take a look. The house is right there, and they can¡¯t carry it away now. Let¡¯s discuss this when Granddad, Mike, and John are back.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt said hatefully, ¡°It has been so many years. Why didn¡¯t the two girls die outside? Now, they¡¯re back to fight for their family property Daughters who are married off are no longer members of the family. How can they have a share of it? If they¡¯re so capable, go and fight for their inws¡¯ family property.¡± She and her daughters-inw had never returned to their parents¡¯ homes to fight for the family¡¯s property. How dare Liberty and her sistere back to fight for theirs? If the sisters took the house away, how shameful would Old Mrs. Hunt be? She would not dare go out and meet people in the future. Noah did not study well, so he quit school and did nothing at home at the moment. Even so, he more or less knew some of thew He said, ¡°Grandmom, if Serenity takes this to court, even for you and Granddad together, your share of this house wouldn¡¯t be as much as theirs. As for the half of the inheritance that belonged to Aunt Lisa, you¡¯re not entitled to it. ¡°Also. John only verbally said that he wanted to be adopted into Uncle Scott¡¯s family as a son to inherit the family line, but the formalities weren¡¯t done. Besides, John is still living with Uncle Chris and calls him Dad His adoption into Uncle Scott¡¯s family is invalid. ¡°If you want to give Uncle Scott¡¯s inheritance to John, you have to wait for Uncle Chris to pass away. Even then, John wouldn¡¯t be able to inherit everything. My dad, my aunts, and we will also have a share of it.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt was dazed after listening to everything. Chapter 1028 Chapter 1028 Chapter 1028 ¡°We won¡¯t be able to win thewsuit?¡± Old Mrs Hunt continued. ¡°This house was built by your Uncle Scott, and I¡¯m his mother, but I still can¡¯t inherit it?¡± ¡°You can, but you can¡¯t inherit itpletely Just like what I just told you, you can only inherit a quarter of Uncle Scott¡¯s share It¡¯s the same for Granddad This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Noah was only patiently exining everything to his grandmom because he was afraid she would sh with Serenity again. 1 don¡¯t care In any case, your granddad and I live in this house It belongs to us, and we can give it to whomever we want Am I going to be arrested if we lose thewsuit?¡± Noah scared his grandmom, ¡°If thew is enforced, you and Granddad will be evicted from the house If you cause trouble, you¡¯ll be arrested and given free meals like how I was detainedst time Grandmom, it¡¯s scary to be detained. It¡¯s better not to break thew.¡± He was traumatized after being detained for fifteen days. He did not have the guts to do anything harmful again. ¡°But Serenity and Liberty are daughters. Can daughters inherit the family property too?¡± ¡°ording to inheritancew, daughters also have the right to inherit.¡± ¡°Why aren¡¯t those d*mn girls dead? If they had died earlier, they wouldn¡¯te back to fight for the family property with me.¡± Old Mrs. Hunt did not know thew, but after his grandson¡¯s exnation, she realized that she and her husband could not take much advantage of the situation. She also could not make the call to give all of Scott¡¯s family assets to John. Old Mrs. Hunt could not help but curse at Serenity and her sister for shamelessly returning to their parents¡¯ home to fight for the family property. Serenity did not care about the people outside. She took Zachary to visit her family¡¯s house. It was built nearly 20 years ago and had long be an old house. Nevertheless, this was still her home and roots. Standing at the door of a room full of clutter, Serenity said to Zachary, ¡°This room belonged to Liberty and me. I was timid when I was a child and didn¡¯t dare to sleep in a room by myself, so I slept with my sister. ¡°I was also a messy sleeper, always pushing my sister such that she had nowhere to sleep. Once, she even fell off and went under the end. She woke up and felt the sand on the ground, so she called our mom and said there was a lot of sand on the bed. ¡°When she got up and turned on the light, she realized that she had slept on the floor. She fell off after being pushed by me.¡± Serenity smiled as she talked about her embarrassing story as a child, but her eyes eventually turned red. The house was still here, but their parents were no longer around. Back then, Serenity would call out to her mom when she came home from school. Her mother would definitely answer her. One would still have a ce to return to if one¡¯s parents were still alive, but one would only be left with the way home if one¡¯s parents were gone. ¡°I still remember that it was raining when my sister and I were kicked out of the house. They didn¡¯t even let us take umbres. We were drenched in the rain, crying while looking back. They were so cruel that they closed the door and locked it. ¡°At that time, I didn¡¯t understand why we couldn¡¯t live in the house my parents built-our house. ¡°It was very hard for me when I lost my parents. I kept dreaming about them in my sleep, but they went far away when I called out to them¡­ Why did Granddad and Grandmom do that to my sister and me?¡± Chapter 1029 Chapter 1029 Chapter 1029 Thinking about the past. it was hard for not only Serenity and her sister, but also Mrs. Stone and Elisa. Mrs Stones eyes had long been teary Perhaps everything could have changed if she had found her sister earlier Even if she could not change her sister¡¯s death, she could at least protect her two nieces. Her nieces would not have to suffer from the heartlessness of their rtives after the sudden loss of their parents. They would not have to expenence the fickleness and darkness of human nature ¡°Seren¡± Zachary felt sorry for Serenity and embraced her ¡°It¡¯s all in the past, it¡¯s all in the past. He had experienced and gone through the trending topic on Twitterst year together with Serenity Serenity posted her sister¡¯s diary on Twitter to refute what the Hunts imed, and then the public opinion was reversed Zachary read his sister-inw¡¯s diary, but he only dared read it once and not a second time Reading it once was enough to make him feel incredibly sorry for his wife Zachary was not an emotional person, but his eyes were teary after he read his sister-inw¡¯s diary Sometimes, our loved ones were heartless people who would hurt us the most. There was some truth to that statement. Serenity and her sister were hurt the most by their rtives. Elisa took out two small packets of tissues from her bag. She handed one of them to Zachary Zachary took it and thanked her Serenity had her husband take care of her as Zachary would help her wipe her tears with tissues. Mrs. Stone and Liberty also received tissue papers from Elisa. Mrs. Stone saw that her little niece had someone to rely on during her toughest time. On the other hand, Liberty was alone after her divorce. Mrs. Stone was thinking of finding a good man for her once they returned to the city. She wanted Liberty to get married again so that she would also have apanion and someone to rely on. Since Liberty¡¯s first marriage was not good, she needed to be more cautious about her second marriage ¡°Seren, that¡¯s enough. You¡¯re making me cry.¡± Liberty wiped her tears and reminded her sister to stop talking about the past. Though, she could not help but think about the past too now that they returned. Mrs. Stone wiped her tears and said, ¡°I want to hear interesting things and stories about your mom. ¡°Seren, your youngest cousin is probably an easy target. Go find him while your granddad isn¡¯t here yet. Ask him where your parents¡¯ graves have been moved to and take us to visit them.¡± Mrs. Stone was extremely observant. She noticed Noah muttering a lot to Old Mrs. Hunt just now. After that, Old Mrs. Hunt stopped her outburst. Furthermore, Noah was the youngest and was not so scheming, so he was easy to be targeted. Serenity hummed. She turned around and was about to leave ¡°Til go with you.¡± Zachary walked out of the house with Serenity. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Old Mrs Hunt and the others had not left and were still gathering in the open space in front of the house She and the others looked grave when they looked at the piles of bricks, sand, and gravel. Someone who knew thew must have talked to Old Mrs. Hunt about it. Serenity and Liberty were back to fight for the house. This would not concern Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s first and fourth children. After all, she and her husband had long said that Scott¡¯s family property would be inherited by John. The other children could not do anything even though they felt that their parents were biased. After all, John was the most promising child and pleased their parents the most. John¡¯s family felt the same as Old Mrs. Hunt. They felt as if their flesh was being cut off now that Serenity and her sister were going to get a share of Scott¡¯s family property. Chapter 1030 Chapter 1030 Chapter 1030 Serenity¡¯s second aunt asked Old Mrs. Hunt, ¡°Is thend use permit with you? You should¡¯ve gone to transfer the house to your names back then. ¡± If the house was under the elders¡¯ names, even if it was built by Scott and Lisa, it could be said to be a disy of filial respect for the elders. That way, Serenity and her sister would not be able to get the house back. Old Mrs Hunt said, ¡°Back then, your dad and i couldn¡¯t find their household registration permit andnd use permit We didn¡¯t know these as weli, so we thought it wouldn¡¯t matter if we don¡¯t have the permits We¡¯re living in the house, so who would dare evict us? ¡°Those two girls must¡¯ve taken away the household registration permit andnd use permit.¡± ¡°Grandmom, Serenity is out again.¡± Noah saw Zacharying out with Serenity. His scalp could not help but tighten. He was afraid of his cousin. ¡°Noah,e here,¡± Serenity called out ¡®She¡¯s calling for me?¡¯ Noah was startled for a while before he ran over like apdog. He smiled and asked tteringly, ¡°Serenity, what¡¯s the matter?¡± ¡°Where were my parents¡¯ graves moved to? You know, right?¡± Noah was stunned. He wanted to deny it but was instantly frightened by Serenity and her husband¡¯s res. He answered honestly, ¡°I know. They were moved to the woond at the foot of the mountain in Walford Ridge. The grave without a monument is Aunt Lisa¡¯s, and the one with a monument is Uncle Scott¡¯s. You can find them easily once you¡¯re there. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m secretly telling you this, so please don¡¯t say that I told you, Granddad doesn¡¯t let us tell anyone. John usually goes to visit Uncle Scott¡¯s grave by himself every year. As the youngest child, I kept making a fuss about wanting to tag along and managed to follow him a few times, which is why I know where they are.¡± Serenity now knew where her parents¡¯ graves were. However, once they left town, these outrageous people might move them again. Hence, she said to Noah, ¡°You have to keep this a secret too. Don¡¯t tell them what I asked you.¡± She pointed at the building materials on the ground and said, ¡°When I¡¯m not here, you¡¯re responsible for helping me watch the piles of sand, gravel, and bricks. If Ie back the next time and see that they¡¯re gone, I¡¯ll hold you responsible, and you¡¯ll have topensate me for them.¡± Noah was speechless. He did not want such a responsibility. ¡°That¡¯s all. You can go.¡± Noah responded to Serenity and then walked away. As soon as he walked away, Old Mrs. Hunt and the others surrounded him to ask what he and Serenity were talking about. Noah honestly said that Serenity asked him to watch the piles of sand, gravel, and bricks. Old Mrs. Hunt was so ferous that she cursed again, but she did not dare scold Serenity in her face. She cursed from a distance away as she was quite afraid of Zachary Zachary let¡¯s go buy some flowers in town. We¡¯ll give them to my parents when we visit their graves late: * Serenity and Liberty had not been able to visit their parents¡¯ resting ce for a long time. ¡°Alright, try not to let the others know when we go. Since we don¡¯t live here, once we leave, they¡¯ll immediately relocate your parents¡¯ graves again. Seeing how vicious and ruthless they are, I¡¯m sure they¡¯re capable of doing that.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. ¡°know¡± Serenity turned to her sister and others to tell them the n. With that, they stayed in the old house for a while then came out. Afterward, they went to Mrs. Deli and the mayor¡¯s houses for a while then left in their cars. Everyone thought Serenity and her entourage were returning to the city. They did not know that they were only buying flowers in town. On the way, Serenity discussed with her sister, ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s go to the cemetery to buy a burial ground for Mom and Dad We¡¯ll relocate their graves to the cemetery. For one, it¡¯ll be convenient for us to pay our respects. Secondly, we won¡¯t need to worry about their graves being moved anymore.¡± Someone would be keeping watch in the cemetery. Chapter 1031 Chapter 1031 Chapter 1031 Liberty felt that her sisters suggestion was not bad, and she replied, ¡°Alright, we¡¯ll do as you say ¡± Zachary looked at the time and said gently. ¡°Liberty, Seren, once we reach town, let¡¯s go eat first. We adults won¡¯t be hungry but Sonny is still a kid he won¡¯t be able to hold out and will probably get hungry soon.¡± Serenity looked at the time Without realizing it, it was already almost noon. She said in agreement. ¡°Then let¡¯s go eat first I haven¡¯t eaten my hometown¡¯s specialty for a long time now too¡± ¡°When we get back, we¡¯ll go ahead and immediately prepare to file awsuit,¡± Serenity said, directed at Liberty Liberty did not have anything to add. Considering Liberty¡¯s shop was about to open for its first day of business soon and she would be very busy, Serenity said thoughtfully, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll handle this. Your shop will have its grand opening the day after tomorrow and you¡¯ll definitely be swarmed. I work with Jasmine, so Jasmine can watch the shop while i go handle matters for thewsuit¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. I have to trouble you then, Seren.¡± Liberty felt that although she was the elder sister, she felt pretty useless as one because a lot of their issues were being handled by her younger sister at the moment. ¡°This is what we need to do to take back our parents¡¯ home. If you say you¡¯re troubling me, it¡¯s like you¡¯re regarding me as an outsider Zachary held Serenity¡¯s hand and said tenderly, ¡°Seren, you have to tell me when you need my help. Don¡¯t just bear everything by yourself.¡± Serenity still said the same thing, ¡°If I can handle it myself, I¡¯ll manage it myself. I definitely won¡¯t be shy with you when I need help.¡± As she said that, she covered Sonny¡¯s eyes with a hand and pecked Zachary¡¯s face. Having his eyes suddenly covered by his aunt, Sonny instinctively tried to move his aunt¡¯s hand away. Serenity smiled mischievously as she removed the hand that was covering Sonny¡¯s eyes. This was the first time she had boldly expressed her love for Zachary in front of her elder sister. Zachary wanted to respond in kind, but regretfully, she had already removed the hand that had been covering Sonny¡¯s eyes. Sonny¡¯s ck but big and bright eyes shone with bewilderment as he looked at his aunt and uncle, which made Zachary feel abashed about kissing Serenity back. ¡°Aunt Ser, why did you cover my eyes?¡± Sonny asked. Libertyughed. Serenity, however, said, ¡°I wanted to y hide and seek with you. Sonny felt dubious. After tilting his head and thinking about it for a moment, he said childishly, ¡°But we¡¯re in Uncle Zak¡¯s car. We can¡¯t y hide and seek here.¡± ¡°That¡¯s true. We can¡¯t y hide and seek in the car. I didn¡¯t even think of that but Sonny did! You¡¯re amazing, Sonny!¡± Serenity praised him. Sonny looked very happy and said confidently, ¡°I¡¯ve always been amazing.¡± Everyone broke intoughter. After the group of people reached town, had something to eat, and rested for a bit, they went to buy some candles. They then went to the florist and bought two bouquets of white roses. Following that, they went to the address Noah Hunt had provided to pay respects at Scott¡¯s and Lisa¡¯s graves. The Hunts had only erected a gravestone for Scott but not for Lisa. If not for Noah Hunt informing them. about it, who would know that was Lisa¡¯s grave? The Hunts¡¯ n had been to let Lisa¡¯s grave remain unmarked so no one could visit and pay their respects After many years of not being able to visit their parents¡¯ graves, Serenity and Liberty cried before the gravestones for a while. Meanwhile, Mrs. Stone sat before her sister¡¯s grave for a long time before getting up and leaving with the rest. After returning to the city, her shop¡¯s opening was still on Liberty¡¯s mind. She had not employed anyone and was doing everything herself without rest. After getting home, she got on her e-bike and went to the shop with her son in tow. Serenity was not in a good mood and Zachary sat with her on the swing on their balcony. The husband and wife leaned against each other. In front of All You Can Eat stood a person-Hank Brown. Chapter 1032 Chapter 1032 Chapter 1032 He had probably just arrived and seeing the shop was not open, he stood at the door for a moment before turning to leave Once he turned around he saw Liberty approaching as she rode the e-bike with her son. ¡°Liberty!¡± Hank Brown shouted. Hearing her ex-husband¡¯s shout, Liberty had the impulse to make a U-turn and leave. Her ex-husband and his family simply seemed to keep haunting her. She had never seen Hank so concerned about her and her son even before they had divorced. The little guy sitting in front, however, was very happy when he saw his father and yelled, ¡°Daddy.¡± Liberty did not turn her bike around and leave in the end. She had not done anything wrong, after all. She did not need to feel guilty. Hank walked down the steps and waited for the mother and son to reach him. ¡°Sonny¡± Liberty parked the e-bike and Hank walked forward to carry his son down from the child¡¯s seat He asked Sonny, smiling. ¡°Sonny, did you miss Daddy?¡± ¡°I did.¡± Hank lowered his head to kiss his son¡¯s cheek and Sonny kissed his cheek in return. After the affectionate moment between the father and son, Hank asked Liberty, ¡°Were you busy today? I came by a few times but your shop wasn¡¯t open.¡± He did not dare call Liberty. Liberty did not like receiving calls from him. Liberty was expressionless as she walked up the steps and asked him, ¡°Why are you looking for me? Are you still trying to get me to transfer ownership of the shop to you? Or are you trying to borrow money from me on your sister¡¯s behalf?¡± Carrying his son, Hank followed Liberty into the shop after she unlocked the door. ¡°Your breakfast ce opens the day after tomorrow, right?¡± Hank asked as he looked around the shop. and indiscriminately found somewhere to sit. Liberty said to him, ¡°Hank Brown, just tell me frankly what you came here for But if you want my shop or want me to lend your sister money to start a business, the door¡¯s right there. Go back to wherever you. came from. If you came to see Sonny, then you should take Sonny shopping. He¡¯s almost three and as his father, you¡¯ve never taken him shopping.¡± Hank hurriedly said, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m not here to borrow money from you. Whether or not my sister has money, I¡¯m very aware that in the past when I had high earnings, I didn¡¯t have to care what my sister did. Since we were young, my parents told us siblings that we would be family for the rest of our lives and had to love each other. ¡°Now, I¡¯m not working and I don¡¯t have any ie. I still need whatever savings I have left to pay wedding. There¡¯s no way I¡¯ll lend it to my sister if she still tries to ask me for money.¡± for my Liberty said mockingly, ¡°How rare! Mr. Brown still has moments of rity. I thought you would continue enabling your sister. It seems Ms. Yates is capable indeed.¡± She had been too kind after all. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. As a daughter-inw and a wife, she felt she ought to learn from Jessica. Although Jessica was the third wheel who had managed to sessfully be the newdy of the house, she was aggressive enough with Hank and knew how to cry, pout, and pretend that she was aggrieved, making Hank unconsciously biased in her favor. When it came to a malicious mother-inw and a trashy sister-inw, Jessica did not give even an inch and would not enable Chelsea¡¯s behavior of taking advantage of her maiden family. Hank¡¯s face was a little red. He did in fact enable his sister a lot in the past and was very obedient towards her, which was how his rtionship with Liberty worsened until they ended up divorcing. ¡°Jessica¡­ has a lot of ws too. There are many areas in which she can¡¯tpare to you.¡± Hank only realized the ws in Jessica after moving in together. ¡°Anyway, let¡¯s not talk about that. Liberty, I¡¯ve ordered flowers for your shop¡¯s opening.¡± Hank was thoroughly annoyed by his wife and his mother¡¯s arguing, which was why he hade to Liberty¡¯s diner for some peace and quiet. Ordering flowers to congratte her on her new shop¡¯s opening was merely an excuse. Chapter 1033 Chapter 1033 Chapter 1033 Liberty said with an impassive face, ¡°If your wife finds out that you ordered flowers for me and she comes yelling at me for seducing her husband, that would be hrious. If I wanted to seduce a man, I would definitely seduce someone better and more outstanding than you are. Why would I pick up trash I¡¯ve already thrown away? Are there no men left in the world?¡± Hank flushed in embarrassment In Liberty¡¯s view, he was a scumbag. Considering her temperament, she would never get back together with an ex He really did not understand what his mother and sister thought They treated Liberty so badly in the past and now wanted him to win Liberty back. What did they think she was? Someone who woulde and go when beckoned with the wave of a hand. ¡°Liberty, I admit I was wrong, but that¡¯s all in the past now. Now, we can¡¯t be husband and wife, but we can still be friends. For Sonny¡¯s sake, could you at least give me some leeway?¡± Liberty looked at her son. He was innocent and pure and to this day did not understand why his parents were not living together anymore, and why his dad was no longer beside his mom but another woman instead Liberty thought of the fact that her son was still young and had not exined to him what divorce meant. Once he was able to understand better, she would tell him that even if she and Hank were no longer husband and wife or even if they turned into strangers, they were still Sonny¡¯s parents. Her love for Sonny remained unchanged. Whether or not Hank would change in the future was hard to say. Jessica was not pregnant yet and her ex-husband¡¯s family still viewed Sonny as very important. Once Jessica got pregnant and had a child, would the Browns still remember who Sonny was? ¡°Liberty, do you need me toe over and help when you open? If you¡¯re worried Jessica will misunderstand, I¡¯ll get my parents toe. They can¡¯t do much, but they can help you clear the dishes, wash them, and help look after Sonny.¡± Smiling in embarrassment, he continued, ¡°If you¡¯re willing to pay them a little for wages, please do, but it doesn¡¯t matter if you aren¡¯t They¡¯re Sonny¡¯s grandparents and family. We should all help each other out.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Liberty immediately rejected, ¡°There¡¯s no need. Seren and Mrs. Lane wille over to help out.¡± If not for Sonny, she would not interact with the Browns at all. ¡°Who¡¯s Mrs. Lane?¡± Hank asked. ¡°None of your business.¡± Hank choked, then said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, we¡¯ve known each other for more than a decade and were once in love. Yes, I made a mistake many men would make and I¡¯m not asking for your forgiveness either. I won¡¯t regret the path I chose myself¡± ¡°But don¡¯t be so defensive against me, like I¡¯m a thief. At the very least, I¡¯m still Sonny¡¯s biological dad. I don¡¯t skimp on Sonny¡¯s child support fees either. Compared to those guys who help others raise their children after getting divorced, I think I¡¯m one of the better ones.¡± He would take care of Sonny now when he was young, and he hoped Sonny would take care of him when he was old. ¡°Mr. Brown, since you¡¯re well aware that we are no longer husband and wife, stop saying things like we¡¯re a family. If your wife heard that, be careful or she might twist your ear and make you kneel on spikes. Now that we have nothing to do with each other, why should I tell you about my business?¡± Liberty did not show Hank any mercy. She did not want Hank to know too much either. Do not assume she was oblivious to this piece of trash trying to find out what sort of benefits she was getting from her sister. He wanted to ameliorate the antagonistic rtionship between them, then shamelessly ask her to ask Zachary to let him off the hook. Hank was cognizant that the reason he and Jessica lost their jobs and could not find new ones to this day was due to Zachary¡¯s punishment. As long as Zachary did not let them off the hook, they would not be able to find a job. He could not reconcile with himself to return to his old home in the countryside to farm thend and refused to go back. After bringing it up once, Jessica made such a big fuss that he felt dizzy. She said she had gotten together with him in the first ce because he had bought a house in the city and had a stable job, high ie, and was able to hustle on the side for extra cash. She also came from a farming vige and only managed to get out with much difficulty. She was not willing to go back to that again. Chapter 1034 Chapter 1034 Chapter 1034 Jessica was not willing, and deep down, neither was Hank So only by aineliorating his rtionship with Liberty could they get Zachary to spare them If he knew earlier that Serenity was Mr. York¡¯s wife even if he had to drag it out, he would have done his best to dy divorcing Liberty. Then Serenity would not have allowed Zachary to force him into a corner for her sister Unfortunately, these were all thoughts in hindsight At the time he had suspected that Zachary was ¡°the¡± Zachary York but did not believe that Serenity had the luck to mam into a rich family, so he had discarded the thought Who knew that he really was ¡°the¡± Zachary York? Hank was at a loss for words ¡°Mr Brown, if there¡¯s nothing else, please leave ¡± Hank hugged his son and sat there, unmoving, but said, ¡°I want to apany Sonny a little longer In the past, I was too busy with work and didn¡¯t have the time to y with him, but now that I¡¯m temporarily unemployed, it just so happens I have the time to make it up to him.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you and Ms. Yates have a wedding to hold? Don¡¯t you have to renovate the house anew?¡± Liberty asked in return. ¡°My money is mostly being managed by Jessica. I let her take care of all that so she understands both our families¡¯ financial situations. Then, she won¡¯t think of trying to help her maiden family out,¡± Hank said. The Yateses are kind of like vampires. They want to catch me and suck the life out of me. Luckily, Jessica knows how to draw the line.¡± Hank had zero goodwill for his inws now The dowry given had been a little bit low, so his parents-inw had further asked him to buy a scooter each for his two brothers-inw They said they did not need to be too expensive-just over ten thousand dors each would do. New scooters that cost over ten thousand dors each for them both would still result in his spending over twenty to thirty thousand dors. Hank did not even bother negotiating with his parents-inw further and told Jessica directly that they only had the little amount of money left and let her deal with it as she saw fit. Jessica¡¯s heart was fixated on their own little home. How could she be willing to fork out another twenty to thirty thousand dors to buy vehicles for her two older brothers? She herself was still using Hank¡¯s old car Thus, Jessica would return to her parents¡¯ home to argue with her parents, brothers, and sisters-inw about once every two or three days. Jessica¡¯s parents would scold her and call her a waste of money who did not know how to squeeze the Browns for benefits to give to her own family. Jessica would retort by asking how much money the Yateses forked out and what benefits they gave her sisters-inw¡¯s families when her elder brothers got married. This struck her parents into speechlessness. At the time their daughters-inw married into their family, they had been very stingy. They had only given 6,600 dors to each family, and did not pay for anything else. Moreover, before their two sons got married, they kept control over their bank ounts. They did not give any more money to their inws, but the dowry Jessica¡¯s sisters-inw provided was worth more than tens of thousands of dors. ¡°Ms. Yates is indeed much more capable than I was.¡± Even Liberty had to admit that when it came to being a wife and daughter-inw, Jessica was much better than she was. Back then, it was precisely because she loved Hank that she tolerated everything and got bullied harshly. Was the reason her ex-mother-inw and ex-sister-inw could bully her to that extent not all because she had enabled it? This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. If she had aggressively retaliated from the start, that mother-and-daughter pair would have known her might. How could they have dared keep bleating then? Chapter 1035 Chapter 1035 Chapter 1035 ¡°But Jessica¡¯s family isn¡¯t good not as good as Serenity Back then, Serenity not only would help with the housework and make breakfast but would also help with taking care of Sonny In the past, no matter what time I got up. Serenity would prepare breakfast for us three and I only had to eat and go to work. ¡°Now Jessica won¡¯t get up early to make breakfast for us and even wants me to get up and make it for her Her family only knows how to ask for favors but they don¡¯t help in any way¡± Liberty felt furious hearing that ¡°That was because you treated my sister like a free housekeeper! Do you remember why we arguedst year? You said my sister was staying in your house for free and what was the use of paying two to three thousand dors a month for food? ¡°Now there¡¯s no one being a free housekeeper for you guys, you¡¯re saying my sister was good? Mr Brown, let me tell you, if it weren¡¯t for me, Seren would have moved out long ago. Do you think she was happy to be a housekeeper for free? She did it all for me. 7 was useless as an elder sister. I couldn¡¯t protect her and let you look down on her and use her, forcing her to get married just to move out. ¡°Back when we got married, we agreed to let Seren move in, unless she got married¡­ Of course, looking at it from another angle, I have you to thank for it. If it weren¡¯t for your hostility and usations against Seren, Seren wouldn¡¯t have gotten married to Zachary ¡°You could have some credit for Seren managing to marry into the York family.¡± Hank Brown was struck speechless. How aggravating. ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s not rehash old scores.¡± Hank smiled, embarrassed. ¡°That¡¯s all in the past now.¡± ¡°You started it first If you want to spend more time with Sonny, take him out to y. There¡¯s a small park nearby You should take Sonny there to y. I have things to do and I don¡¯t have the time to be bothered my work.¡± with you. If you stay here, you¡¯ll just very much affect my mood and If not for the fact that her son was present and the little guy was intimately cradled in Hank¡¯s arms, clearly showing the deep bond between them, Liberty would have wanted to chase her ex-husband out with a broom. She thought that after the divorce, it would be as if they were walking separate paths. Their rtionship would end there and they would no longer contact each other. Unexpectedly, after the divorce, her ex-husband¡¯s family suddenly felt that she was amazing and kept looking for her intermittently, disturbing her life. However, because of Sonny, she could not be too crude in return. ¡°Go to the park? Dad, I wanna go to the park.¡± Sonny heard his parents¡¯ conversation and did not understand what it meant but he could tell his mother was unhappy. If mom wanted dad to take him out to y, he would get dad to take him to the park to y. Dad had never taken him to a park. ¡°Okay, okay. Dad will bring Sonny to the park.¡± Hank did not want to continue rehashing the past with Liberty either Every time they brought it up, he could not raise his head. Who asked him to be the wrongdoer? Although the person he loved at the moment was still Jessica and he did not have any desire to reconcile. with Liberty, he had to admit that Liberty was much better than Jessica in many ways. Did he regret it? Even if he did, Hank would rather die than admit it. Hank picked Sonny up and said, ¡°When you make dinnerter, cook extra. I¡¯ll eat here before I go ¡°My shop has not officially opened for business yet. We¡¯re not doing business at the moment.¡± ¡°Liberty¡­¡± ¡°If you want to eat here in the future, ce an order and pay for it. Then I¡¯ll make it for you to eat.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Hank Brown was struck silent. Resentfully, he took his son to the nearby park to y and cultivate their father-son bond. back ¡± Now, Hank was thankful that he listened to Jessica back then and gave Sonny¡¯s custody to Liberty. That way, they could use Sonny and go to Liberty¡¯s ce often. It was just that every time he came over and saw Liberty, he felt very unhappy. After getting divorced, he had been having a bad time, but Liberty was doing pretty well. She had opened a shop and was even losing weight. After shedding more than twenty pounds, she was half as pretty as she was before getting married. If she lost another twenty or so pounds, she wouldpletely recover the slim body she had had before their marriage. Hank was reluctant to admit that Liberty would not be at all inferior to Jessica after slimming down. Chapter 1036 Chapter 1036 Chapter 1036 As Duncan was driving past after work, he happened to see Hank carry Sonny out from the shop. Thinking that the scumbag was here to kidnap Sonny, he immediately hit the brakes and stopped in front of All You Can Eat ¡°Sonny Duncan swiftly got out of his car and walked over with big strides Before Hank could react, Duncan had taken his son from his arms. After Duncan took Sonny from Hank, he even gave Hank a kick, which made Hank stumble a few steps backward and finally fall to the ground onto the steps, butt first. Hank looked at Duncan, stunned. What was this Lewis doing? He took his son and even gave him a kick! ¡°Get out of here! If you dare try and kidnap Sonny again and harass Liberty, I¡¯ll make sure you won¡¯t be able to walk before I¡¯m done with you!¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°Dad!¡± Sonny cried, struggling to get down. Hank climbed to his feet and exined, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯ve misunderstood me. I¡¯m not here to kidnap Sonny, and I haven¡¯t harassed Liberty either. I¡¯m just here to see Sonny. Sonny said he wanted to go to the park to y, so I¡¯m bringing him there.¡± Duncan red at him, making it obvious that he did not believe him. Duncan walked straight into the shop, carrying Sonny ¡°Liberty.¡± He yelled the moment he walked through the door. His voice has always been on the rough side. ¡°Has that scumbag beening by to harass you again? He¡¯s trying to kidnap Sonny, isn¡¯t he?¡± There had been a precedent for the Browns to kidnap Sonny Liberty came out of the little kitchen and saw Duncan carrying Sonny. She was stunned for a moment before she said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re here. I did ask him to bring Sonny out to y.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°So it was my misunderstanding¡­¡± Duncan said. He put Sonny down and turned to say to Hank, ¡°That¡¯s fine. You should take Sonny out to y then. I didn¡¯t use much strength in that kick earlier, so you should be able to take it, right?¡± Hank¡¯s expression was so dark it was dripping ck ink. Duncan¡¯s kick earlier was really hard, okay? He had even stumbled a few steps backward and had fallen on his bum. Under Duncan Lewis¡¯ re, however, Hank did not dare say a word and just left after picking Sonny up. After leaving the shop, he cajoled his son, ¡°Sonny, let¡¯s not go to the park anymore, okay?¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you see that scary man in your mom¡¯s shop? He¡¯s so fierce, even Dad¡¯s scared of him. Mom will definitely be scared of him too. If we go to the park to y and leave Mom alone in the store, she¡¯ll be bullied by that cruel man.¡± ¡°Sonny¡¯s a little man, so you should learn how to protect Mom.¡± Duncan¡¯s arrival made Hank not want to leave. He wanted to stay there, even if Liberty tried to chase him. out with a broom. He wanted to be the third wheel. Duncan was definitely trying to pursue Liberty! Hank felt extremely agitated. Duncan had a knife scar on his face and looked extremely terrifying, but he was the CEO of a big corporation and was better than him in every way. Hank had lost his job after his second marriage. If Liberty married into a rich family for her second marriage, Hank would go crazy with envy. Chapter 1036 As Duncan was driving past after work, he happened to see Hank carry Sonny out from the shop. Thinking that the scumbag was here to kidnap Sonny, he immediately hit the brakes and stopped in front of All You Can Eat ¡°Sonny Duncan swiftly got out of his car and walked over with big strides Before Hank could react, Duncan had taken his son from his arms. After Duncan took Sonny from Hank, he even gave Hank a kick, which made Hank stumble a few steps backward and finally fall to the ground onto the steps, butt first. Hank looked at Duncan, stunned. What was this Lewis doing? He took his son and even gave him a kick! ¡°Get out of here! If you dare try and kidnap Sonny again and harass Liberty, I¡¯ll make sure you won¡¯t be able to walk before I¡¯m done with you!¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°Dad!¡± Sonny cried, struggling to get down. Hank climbed to his feet and exined, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯ve misunderstood me. I¡¯m not here to kidnap Sonny, and I haven¡¯t harassed Liberty either. I¡¯m just here to see Sonny. Sonny said he wanted to go to the park to y, so I¡¯m bringing him there.¡± Duncan red at him, making it obvious that he did not believe him. Duncan walked straight into the shop, carrying Sonny ¡°Liberty.¡± He yelled the moment he walked through the door. His voice has always been on the rough side. ¡°Has that scumbag beening by to harass you again? He¡¯s trying to kidnap Sonny, isn¡¯t he?¡± There had been a precedent for the Browns to kidnap Sonny Liberty came out of the little kitchen and saw Duncan carrying Sonny. She was stunned for a moment before she said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re here. I did ask him to bring Sonny out to y.¡± ¡°So it was my misunderstanding¡­¡± Duncan said. He put Sonny down and turned to say to Hank, ¡°That¡¯s fine. You should take Sonny out to y then. I didn¡¯t use much strength in that kick earlier, so you should be able to take it, right?¡± Hank¡¯s expression was so dark it was dripping ck ink. Duncan¡¯s kick earlier was really hard, okay? He had even stumbled a few steps backward and had fallen on his bum. Under Duncan Lewis¡¯ re, however, Hank did not dare say a word and just left after picking Sonny up. After leaving the shop, he cajoled his son, ¡°Sonny, let¡¯s not go to the park anymore, okay?¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you see that scary man in your mom¡¯s shop? He¡¯s so fierce, even Dad¡¯s scared of him. Mom will definitely be scared of him too. If we go to the park to y and leave Mom alone in the store, she¡¯ll be bullied by that cruel man.¡± ¡°Sonny¡¯s a little man, so you should learn how to protect Mom.¡± Duncan¡¯s arrival made Hank not want to leave. He wanted to stay there, even if Liberty tried to chase him. out with a broom. He wanted to be the third wheel. Duncan was definitely trying to pursue Liberty! Hank felt extremely agitated. Duncan had a knife scar on his face and looked extremely terrifying, but he was the CEO of a big corporation and was better than him in every way. Hank had lost his job after his second marriage. If Liberty married into a rich family for her second marriage, Hank would go crazy with envy. Chapter 1037 Chapter 1037 Chapter 1037 Sonny looked at his dad and said. ¡°That¡¯s Dune Dune would never bully Mom Hank was silent for a moment before he asked. Do you like Dunc a lot?¡± Sonny shook his head I don¡¯t like Dunc, but he¡¯s not a bad person¡± Dunc was a good person, but that did not have anything to do with whether or not he liked him. ¡°Sonny Dunc is going to take Mom away from you He¡¯ll be a bad guy in the future What you need to do is stop Dunc and Mom from being alone together If Mom wants to go on a date with Dunc, you need to cry and throw a tantrum, get it?¡± Sonny learned the way his Uncle Zak frowned when he was angry and said loudly, ¡°Dunc likes Sonny! He¡¯s fighting Mom for Sonny, not fighting Sonny for Mom! Dunc looks scary on the outside and Sonny doesn¡¯t like it, but Dunc is not a bad person!¡± ¡°And Mom never goes out with Dunc! Every time Dunces over, he gives Sonny a pinwheel. Sonny doesn¡¯t like pinwheels anymore.¡± Dunc did not even know how to change it up. Hank was speechless. He stopped and looked at his son. When they had gotten divorced, Sonny still was not speaking very well, but in only a few months, not only was Sonny conversing well, he was speaking clearly. His son was so smart! ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re still young, so you don¡¯t really understand adult matters. Anyway, Dunc doesn¡¯t have good intentions toward your mom. He¡¯s deliberately pleasing you His actual intention isn¡¯t what his actions show but rather he¡¯s aiming for your mom. ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t you think Mommy is getting prettier by the day? He¡¯s been tempted by your Mom¡¯s beauty and that¡¯s why he keepsing to find Mom every other day. He¡¯s just using you as an excuse.¡± Sonny said, ¡°Mom has always been beautiful.¡± In a child¡¯s heart, a mother is always the most beautiful person in the world. ¡°Sure, sure. Your mom has always been beautiful. Sonny, shall wee back after we get something to eat? Let¡¯s not go to the park anymore.¡± Sonny refused and was very insistent. ¡°I want to go to the park. I just want to go to the park!¡± Mom had been really busytely and so had Aunt Ser, so he had not been to the park to y in a long time No matter how Hank tried to coax him, Sonny persisted in going to the park. Hank had no choice but to bring Sonny to the park to y This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. He was distracted and kept thinking of Liberty and Duncan in the diner Who knew what the two of them would end up doing? Hank disparaged Duncan in his heart, thinking to himself that Duncan had the shitty taste to actually be attracted to a divorcee like Liberty, who was a fat cow, at that. Now that an even more outstanding man than he was had his eye on a woman he did not want and was pursuing her, Hank had mixed feelings. Back in the diner, Liberty did not know that her ex-husband was trying to use their son to stop Duncan. Her attitude toward Duncan was much better today. ¡°Is the office still open today?¡± she asked after pouring a cup of warm water for Duncan and offering a seat ¡°It¡¯s been really busytely. Everyone has to work an extra day on the weekend. We¡¯re giving them double the pay and tomorrow the wholepany is taking the day off. ¡°Liberty, is that scumbag ex-husband of yours regretting it and trying to pursue you again?¡± Duncan asked as he drank from his cup of water. Liberty immediately replied, ¡°How could that be? He and that Yates woman just registered their marriage. on Valentine¡¯s Day. Now, they¡¯re preparing for the wedding. They¡¯re also in the midst of renovating their marital home and he¡¯s repeatedly stressed that he doesn¡¯t regret getting a divorce.¡± Chapter 1038 Chapter 1038 Chapter 1038 Liberty did not regret it either Duncan frowned. ¡°Then why is he constantly here looking for you? That scumbag treated you like that back then. Every time I see him I feel like giving him a beating and venting some anger for you¡± He wants to use Sonny to ease the hostile rtionship between us¡± Duncan was thoughtful for a moment, and said, ¡°Their main aim is to get Zachary to let them off the hook, night¡± Don¡¯t forgive them and let them be unemployed forever Once they¡¯ve spent all their savings, we¡¯ll see if Hank and his wife can still continue being as loving to each other as before¡± Poor couples had a hundred things to lose Hank and Jessica¡¯s bitter days were still ahead of them. ¡°Now that your diner is here, you can¡¯t move and neither do you have to move. Just let them watch how your business gets bigger and better every step of the way In the future, you can open a big hotel and be a strong independent woman and a billionaire-we¡¯ll see how frustrated they get.¡± Libertyughed ¡°I want to be able to open a big hotel in the future and be a billionaire too, but we¡¯ll see how business for this diner goes first. My first goal is to earn back the capital I put in to open this diner. ¡°My second goal is to be able to open a branch.¡± Her life goal was to grow her business step by step and see if she could open a big hotel in the future and make her way into the F&B industry. ¡°When we just got divorced, I wanted to cut all contact with the Browns, but my ex-mother-inw stalked me and found out I¡¯m opening a diner here as well as where I¡¯m living now. I couldn¡¯t escape them. Then, thinking about it, there¡¯s no way we can really cut all contact since Sonny¡¯s still stuck in the middle. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Anyway, I won¡¯t let myself be trampled all over by them again. I¡¯m not scared of theming over periodically to bring attention to their existence.¡± Duncan hit the nail on the head and said, ¡°They regret it because you have a rich aunt and also because your sister is Zachary¡¯s wife. They just want to benefit from all that. ¡°Also, you¡¯ve been working hard since leaving the Browns and living your life fully. God won¡¯t treat hardworking people unfairly. Your life will only get better, more than theirs could ever be. ¡°Now, they not only regret it, but they¡¯re also envious of you.¡± Libertyughed. ¡°That¡¯s why I say even divorce isn¡¯t scary when you meet a scumbag. The best revenge is to live better than he does.¡± Even if she had not found her rich aunt and her sister was not Zachary¡¯s wife, her days would only get better. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I¡¯m going to prepare dinner for myself and my son. Do you want to eat with us? Though our meals are usually simple.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need. I promised my mother to go back and eat dinner with her tonight. Oh, right. Where have you been the whole day? When I went to work this morning, I didn¡¯t see your shop open. I didn¡¯t see it open when I got off work this afternoon either.¡± Duncan had to pass this street every day on his way to and from work to reach his office. He did not have to pay special attention to know Liberty had not been in the whole day. ¡°Seren and I made a trip back to our old home. We only just got back this afternoon.¡± Duncan made a sound in acknowledgment, and asked with interest, ¡°What did you go back for?¡± ¡°To fight for our inheritance and pay our respects to my parents.¡± Duncan hummed again. ¡°Did you win?¡± He was aware that Liberty¡¯s home had been entirely taken over by her grandparents and they even wanted to pass it down to John. Liberty was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°We¡¯ll bring the matter to court. They won¡¯t return the house to us in good graces.¡± Thinking of how the Hunts had been making so much troubletely in trying to get money from Zachary and even trying to ruin Zachary and Serenity¡¯s marriage, Duncan said, ¡°That shameless bunch of people. definitely won¡¯t return it to you honestly. There¡¯s no need to be considerate of them. Just sue them and settle the matter through the courts. ¡°If you need legal aid, just let me know. I have a legal advisor.¡± Liberty did not need Duncan¡¯s help but still thanked him. Chapter 1039 Chapter 1039 Chapter 1039 Duncan too knew that Liberty did not need his help-she had the Stone and York families helping her now. After a moment of silence, he said, ¡°Anyway, go ahead and do your thing. I¡¯ll head back lest my mother calls to urge me again.¡± ¡°Alright. Have a safe drive, Mr. Lewis.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Liberty walked Duncan out of her shop. Duncan looked at Hank¡¯s car and asked Liberty. ¡°That¡¯s your ex-husband¡¯s car, right?¡± ¡°I saw him get out of it. It¡¯s probably his new car.¡± Hank had changed his wife and his car too. If Zachary had not punished Hank, Hank would have been living veryfortably. He would have money, a new wife, and a new car¡­ Duncan wanted to walk over and poke a hole in Hank¡¯s tires, but when he thought of how Hank would likely be unable to leave for a while with his tires punctured and would stay in Liberty¡¯s diner to eat, Duncan gave up on his thoughts. ¡°In the future, if that familyes to try and harass you again, just give me a call and I¡¯ll get someone toe over and help you since I work close by. All the business owners here are renting stores from me, so I¡¯m just protecting my tenants.¡± Duncan said frankly, as if he really had no other motive for doing so and that it was entirely for his renters¡¯ benefit. Liberty smiled and said, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis. Since thest time you brought your people over to help me chase off Mrs. Brown and her daughter, they haven¡¯t appeared again in the past few days.¡± Hank had probably chased that trashy older sister of his back home too. Liberty saw Duncan off as he got into his car and quickly drove away. When he returned to the Lewis family residence, Duncan noticed there was a car he had never seen before parked in his home. As he got out of his car, he asked the employee who came out to greet him, ¡± Whose car is that?¡± ¡°That¡¯s Ms. Harmon¡¯s car.¡± ¡°Ms. Harmon?¡± Duncan frowned. Was there anyone surnamed Harmon among the people his family mingle with? ¡°She¡¯s the daughter of Madam¡¯s friend. She came over from Bellville and I think she¡¯s in Wiltspoon for some business. After the Madam found out, she enthusiastically invited her over to stay.¡± The employee¡¯s exnation raised Duncan¡¯s defenses. That mother of his was trying to matchmake him. again, was she not? As long as it was a young woman from a rich family, his mother would devise ways to make them meet. Duncan did not say anything more and walked into the main building with big strides. The moment he walked in, he heard his mother¡¯s happyughter. ¡°Duncan¡¯s back.¡± 2/2 Mrs. Lewis was stirred into loudughter, amused by Lily Harmon. Seeing that her son was back, she beckoned him over and when Duncan came closer, Lily Harmon stood up and greeted Duncan smilingly,¡± Hi, Duncan. It¡¯s been a while.¡± ¡°Have we met before¡­?¡± Duncan asked. Lily answered, still smiling, ¡°We met once twenty years ago. You might not remember.¡± Lily¡¯s mother was Mrs. Lewis¡¯s old friend and ssmate. After getting married, both thedies seldom met up, but they continued to keep in touch. ¡°I don¡¯t remember things from twenty years ago.¡± He was only sixteen at the time-right in the rebellious stage. ¡°Duncan, this is Fran¡¯s daughter, Lily. You don¡¯t remember?¡± Mrs. Lewis exined. Duncan hummed in acknowledgment. He did not have much of an impression left of Mrs. Harmon, much less her daughter. They only met once twenty years ago. How old was Lily at the time? How could he possibly have an impression of a little girl from twenty years ago? ¡°Lily¡¯s in Wiltspoon for a bit of business. When I heard Fran mention it, I asked Lily toe over and have fun. She¡¯s not familiar with the area, so tomorrow, you should take her sightseeing and familiarize her with Wiltspoon,¡± Chapter 1040 Chapter 1040 Chapter 1040 ¡°When Lily needs help with her stuff, you should help her out too. Fran and I have been good friends for many years now. Although we haven¡¯t met each other in about twenty years, we¡¯ve never stopped talking to each other.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s intention to matchmake Lily and Duncan was exceedingly obvious. Lily¡¯s gaze toward Duncan contained no fear either. In her opinion, the scar on Duncan¡¯s face was terrifying, but all he needed was to get some stic surgery done to remove the scar and recover his good looks. He was an exceptionally handsome man if you look at the side of his face without the scar. Who had never done an impulsive thing or two when they were young? She herself had even gotten a tattoo before. ¡°Mom, I¡¯m very busy.¡± Duncan said without inflection. ¡°If Ms. Harmon requires my help, I can provide it, but I really don¡¯t have the time to take her around. ¡°You¡¯re bored staying at home every day anyway. You can apany Ms. Harmon yourself and take her around to help her get familiar with the area,¡± Duncan said. He then looked apologetically at Lily and uttered, ¡°I really am very busy, Ms. Harmon.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t it a Sunday tomorrow? You still have to go back to the office?¡± ¡°Zachary invited me to his ce tomorrow for a barbeque,¡± Duncan lied. ¡°Then you can just take Lily with you. You guys only have something to talk about when people of the same age get together. I¡¯m old now so there¡¯s a generation gap between us.¡± Duncan said impassively, ¡°We¡¯re going to Wildridge Manor. Don¡¯t you know what Zachary¡¯s temper is like? Without his agreement, we invitees aren¡¯t allowed to bring young women over.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. Zachary already had a wife. Was he still that unreasonable? Mrs. Lewis seriously suspected her son was using Zachary as a shield. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, it¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll be fine with just yourpany. Duncan, you can go ahead with your ns,¡± Lily said astutely. She even surreptitiously tugged on Mrs. Lewis¡¯s clothes, hinting to her to stop pressuring Duncan. ¡°Mom, can we eat? I¡¯m really hungry.¡± Duncan changed the topic. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lewis hurriedly instructed the maids to set the table. Duncan turned and walked toward the dining room. ¡°Lily, that¡¯s how Duncan is. I hope you won¡¯t take it to heart.¡± Lily said, smiling. ¡°No worries, I don¡¯t me him for it. I came over out of the blue when he already had things nned. It isn¡¯t good indeed to make him change his ns for me. By the way, when he said Zachary, did he mean Zachary York? The Wildridge Manor he mentioned is the old York residence.¡± Lily was from Bellville, but she did know a little about Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss. 2/2 ¡°He is the eldest son of the York family. It¡¯s not surprising that many of you don¡¯t know his given name. Zachary¡¯s married and has a partner already but he still doesn¡¯t let his friends bring young women to gatherings at his house.¡± Lily asked with gossipy interest, ¡°I heard his wife is an orphan and came from a farming vige. How did he end up marrying her?¡± ¡°It was arranged by Old Mrs. York. That Hunt woman is indeed parentless. She does have a sister-they depended on each other for survival. Oh, right. Mrs. Stone is their aunt. They only found each otherst year and because of that, Mrs. Stone even held a huge banquet and invited us to celebrate the reunion.¡± Mrs. Lewis had the deepest impression of Liberty because Liberty was overweight. When she saw Liberty at the time, she was utterly disgusted in her heart. She did not have much of an impression of Serenity, but she knew Zachary doted on Serenity the most. Chapter 1041 Chapter 1041 Chapter 1041 Lily said with great interest, ¡°I wonder if I¡¯ll have the chance to get to know Mrs. York.¡± She had heard of Mr. York before but never had the chance to meet him in person. Lily thought to herself that the woman who could move Mr. York definitely had something amazing about her. She could learn a thing or two from thedy about conquering a man. Lily was twenty-eight years old this year and was currently single. She had a rtionship back when she was eighteen or neen but that had been unfruitful. Afterward, she joined her family¡¯spany and ended up too busy with work, which was why until now, she had no boyfriend. Mrs. Lewis had the intention to matchmake her and Duncan and both families were in favor of it. Lily was aware of Duncan¡¯s past as a former gangster and she could ept it. She did not care that he had a scar on his face either because she felt that as long as she made him fall in love with her, she could make him agree to undergo minor stic surgery to remove the scar and recover his good looks. Hearing Lily¡¯s words, Mrs. Lewisughed. ¡°You will. Zachary and Duncan are very good friends.¡± Speaking of this, Mrs. Lewis lowered her voice and said to Lily, ¡°Although Serenity Hunt¡¯s background isn¡¯t much to speak of, the fact that she¡¯s Zachary York¡¯s wife is set in stone. It¡¯ll be good for you to get to know her and forge a connection with her.¡± She was worried that a proud and strongdy like Lily would look down on Serenity when thetter was Zachary¡¯s most precious person while Zachary was good friends with Duncan too. If Lily were to date Duncan, she would inevitably have to join his circle of friends. If Lily looked down on Serenity, she would offend Zachary and affect his rtionship with Duncan. Mrs. Lewis did not wish for Zachary and Duncan¡¯s rtionship to be affected because of Lily. In Wiltspoon, those who Zachary considered close friends and confidants were limited to her son and Josh Bucham only. Lily smiled and said, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I understand. Ladies don¡¯t ask where a person is from. It was Ms. Hunt¡¯s ability that allowed her to be Mrs. York. I can¡¯t admire her enough, so why would I look down on her?¡± Even if Serenity was a beggar, as long as she had won Zachary over, Lily would feel that she was the best amongst all women and was worth learning something from. She was very capable in terms of doing business, but when it came to winning men over, Lily felt that she wascking experience. ¡°It¡¯s great that you can think that way. Let¡¯s go eat.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lewis affectionately pulled Lily into the dining room. The moment they stepped into the dining room, they heard Duncan speaking on the phone with Zachary. A certain Mr. York was currently preparing a dinner filled with love for his esteemed and beloved wife. Serenity was feeling low and did not want to go out to eat either, so Zachary was personally doing the cooking himself. Old Mrs. York had not returned and nobody knew where she had gallivanted to again. In the past, Serenity would be worried about Grandma May, but now, knowing that the olddy was wandering around to secure wives for her grandsons, Serenity no longer worried about her and would not ask where she was going. Zachary had told her too that when his nana was young, she had been the head of intelligence and was very formidable. She only gradually eased into retirement after marrying Zachary¡¯s grandfather, but many of the past generations still sang her praises. Even now when the current head of the Buchams and his son, a family specializing in intelligence, met Grandma May, they were incredibly reverent toward the olddy and viewed her as a maestro in the field. Serenity continued to sit on the swing as she quietly watched the sky outside turn from light to dark. A ringing sound came from Zachary¡¯s phone. Zachary stopped what he was doing and picked up the call after digging out his phone and looking at the caller ID. ¡°Duncan.¡± ¡°Zachary, for the barbecue at your family residence tomorrow, don¡¯t forget to prepare extra chicken thighs -they¡¯re my favorite. I haven¡¯t eaten it in ages and I miss your barbecued chicken thighs a lot.¡± Chapter 1042 Chapter 1042 Chapter 1042 ¡°When did I say I was going back to the manor tomorrow for a barbeque?¡± Zachary asked. If Duncan wanted to have some barbeque, could he not eat somewhere else? Why did it have to be at the manor? ¡°And squid,mb, and big prawns. Anyway, I like eating whatever you roast.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Duncan continued talking to himself about the food as if he did not hear what Zachary said. Zachary proceeded to hang up immediately after that. Though, Duncan¡¯s words did make him think about the idea. Tomorrow was Sunday and they did not need to go to work. Plus, he had never brought Serenity to the manor before. He would do as Duncan said and invite a few friends to the manor for a barbecue. There was indeed a barbecue area back at the manor. He could even bring Serenity back to stay for a few days and let her familiarize herself with the surroundings. The beautifulndscape there might cheer her up too. While the n brewed in his head, Zachary texted Duncan: [Got it. Call Josh too, and tell him to bring Julian along if he¡¯s free.] When Duncan received his buddy¡¯s reply, he breathed a sigh of relief. His cover was nearly blown. Anyway, even if Zachary had not taken the hint, he would have gone to look for Zachary the next day and clung to his side for the whole day. Duncan readily agreed. After Zachary finished texting Duncan, he walked out of the kitchen and to the balcony. Serenity looked at him and asked, ¡°Is dinner ready?¡± ¡°Almost. Are you hungry? The soup¡¯s ready. Why don¡¯t you have some soup first?¡± ¡°No, I don¡¯t have an appetite.¡± Making the trip back to her hometown struck a chord within her and evoked memories of the past. Unable to hold back, tears streamed down her face. Even if they had already left, Serenity was still consumed by her memories. Zachary hunched down to her eye level and reached out to lightly touch her face. He said softly, ¡°I¡¯ll bring you to Wildridge Manor tomorrow and we could stay there for a few days. The scenery is stunning and the beauty of nature is well-preserved. Although the manor was built by man decades ago, it has long since be a part of thendscape. It¡¯s the flowering season now and the manor has quite a few flower fields. It¡¯s absolutely charming. ¡°Duncan called me just now and suggested a barbecue. I asked him to invite Josh and his cousin too. We have an area specifically for barbecuing at the manor. Do you want to invite Ms. Sox, your cousin, and the rest?¡± Zachary recalled that Liberty¡¯s diner was going to officially open for business the day after tomorrow and she would not likely be able to join them for the barbecue. He added, ¡°Tomorrow, first thing in the morning, we¡¯ll go pick Sonny up. Then we¡¯ll go back and I get Mrs. Lane and Jim to go over and help Liberty out. That way, she won¡¯t overwork herself.¡± Serenity quietly looked at him as she listened to his arrangements. ¡°What do you think, Seren? Your call. If you don¡¯t like it, we can always change the n.¡± Serenity reached out and hugged him. Feeling touched, she said, ¡°Thank you, Zachary! It¡¯s so good to have you!¡± When faced with any hardships, he did not give up on her. When she was in a bad mood, he tried everything he could to cheer her up. This man had changed a lot for her sake. Zachary hugged her back before gently pulling away and said warmly, ¡°We¡¯re going to be husband and wife for the rest of our lives, so we should support each other. When I¡¯m sick, you take care of me. When you¡¯re in a bad mood, I¡¯ll cheer you up.¡± He took her hand and interlocked their fingers. Their hearts were of one ord. ¡°When my sister¡¯s diner opens in two days, I¡¯m definitely going over to help. Let¡¯s just stay at the manor for a night ande back first thing in the morning on the opening day.¡± Chapter 1043 Chapter 1043 Chapter 1043 Serenity had long learned that the Yorks were not living in Whitmore Mansion, the residence they stayed in during the New Year¡¯s holidays. The Yorks had cleaned up the ce and moved back in just to deceive her. Lying was hard work! Zachary replied fondly, ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll listen to you. Anyway, it¡¯s our home. We can go back whenever we want to and stay however long we wish.¡± Serenity was about to take the apron off him while saying, ¡°I¡¯ll go make dinner.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need. I only have two more dishes to cook, then I¡¯m done. You should just sit here and appreciate the blooms while I finish up.¡± Zachary stopped her, not allowing her to enter the kitchen. Serenity then kissed him on the cheek. Zachary felt happiness blossom in his heart. He returned to the kitchen to continue cooking with tion. ¡°Babe.¡± Serenity knew he liked to hear her call him ¡°babe¡±. She would indulge him while they were at home. ¡°You invited Josh and Mr. Lewis to the barbecue but I don¡¯t think that¡¯s enough people. Why don¡¯t you invite Mr. Johnson too?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll invite Jasmine and Elisa. I¡¯ll ask Liberty if she wants toe along.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice drifted out from the kitchen, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll call Mr. Johnson in a bit and ask him toe to the barbecue tomorrow.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity first called her sister. After her sister picked up, she asked, ¡°Liberty, have you eaten?¡± ¡°I¡¯m eating right now. I¡¯m still in the shop.¡± ¡°I just knew you would still go to the shop.¡± When they got back from their hometown, it had only been four in the afternoon. Her sister was currently as busy as a bee and would naturally be unwilling to waste those few hours. Libertyughed and asked her sister, ¡°Have you and Zachary eaten?¡± ¡°He¡¯s cooking right now. Liberty, we¡¯re going to his family home tomorrow. He¡¯s invited a few friends to come for a barbecue. Do you want toe with Sonny?¡± Liberty immediately responded, ¡°I still have a lot of things to do and I¡¯m opening the day after tomorrow. Although everything is prepared, I still feel like there are a lot of loose ends for me to tie up. But, I¡¯ve also never been to your inws¡¯ home. I really want to visit.¡± Tania had yet to contact Liberty and Mrs. Stone. Liberty was still internally a little worried that her sister¡¯s inws were dissatisfied with her sister in some aspect. Tania was still preparing the supplements to be gifted to Alice as well as gifts for Liberty. She intended to pick a good day to invite Liberty out for a meal for both families to meet officially and discuss the couple¡¯s wedding. As a result, she had not contacted Liberty yet. ¡°Zachary will arrange for Mrs. Lane and Jim to go over and help out. If you have anything more you need to buy, make a list. Once they¡¯re there, you can just hand it over to them to help you buy. Liberty, let¡¯s go there together then.¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll bring Sonny with me.¡± Liberty could not leave the store behind, but going to the Yorks¡¯ home to meet the parents on behalf of her deceased parents was a little more important than what she had at hand. Since her brother-inw had all the bases covered, she would just hand it over to Mrs. Lane and Jim to handle the store while she would bring her son with her to the Yorks¡¯ family home. ¡°Seren, Sonny wants to talk to you.¡± When the little guy found out his aunt was on the line, he kept tugging at his mother¡¯s sleeve, wanting to talk to her. Liberty handed the phone to her son and he immediately took the phone and said sweetly, ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± ¡°Sonny, are you having dinner? Are you full? What did Mommy cook for you?¡± Sonny said happily, ¡°It¡¯s not Mom¡¯s cooking. It¡¯s the food Dad brought Sonny to buy. It¡¯s delicious, but Mom didn¡¯t eat it. Mom¡¯s just eating vegetables.¡± Liberty was still trying to lose weight. She would not eat meat during dinnertime and only a little bit of meat during lunch. ¡°Your dad came again?¡± That Hank really was clingy and would not leave them alone. What a family of oddballs. Chapter 1044 Chapter 1044 Chapter 1044 ¡°Dad brought Sonny to y in the park.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity asked him, ¡°Has Dad left already?¡± ¡°Dad¡¯s gone back already. He said he¡¯lle again tomorrow to take me out to y. I wanna go to the zoo and Dad said he would bring me there. Aunt Ser, do you want toe with me to the zoo tomorrow?¡± Hank took Sonny out to y for a while and the little guy was really happy. Now, he only had his father on his mind and kept talking about him. Serenityughed and said, ¡°Aunt Ser is going to a barbecue tomorrow. Your mom¡¯s going too. Do you want toe, Sonny?¡± Without any hesitation, Sonny replied, ¡°I want to go! Then I¡¯m not going to the zoo with Dad anymore.¡± Both the aunt and nephew went back and forth with questions and answers, happily chatting away. Serenity only ended the call after a long while, then proceeded to call Jasmine and Elisa, inviting them to go on a road trip to Wildridge Manor together the next day. It was said that Wildridge Manor was captivating and was a scenic area, but of course, not just anyone could get invited to Wildridge Manor. ¡°Honey, it¡¯s time to eat,¡± Zachary called out toward the balcony as he brought thest two dishes out from the kitchen to ce on the dining table. Serenity hurriedly ended her call to Elisa and got up as she responded to Zachary, turning to walk back into the living area. She walked to the dining table and saw that her favorite fresh prawns were on tonight¡¯s menu. She reached out to pick one up and put it into her mouth. ¡°You peeled the prawns.¡± ¡°Uh-huh. It took a bit of effort.¡± When she reached out once more to pick something else to eat, Zachary lightly smacked her hand.¡± You¡¯re already an adult but you¡¯re still taking food with your hands.¡± Serenity giggled and picked another prawn up to put into her mouth. Only then did she enter the kitchen to grab the utensils and tes. The couple was just about to sit down and eat when they heard the sound of the door opening. Nana was back. She smelled the aroma of the food as she entered the house and she asked as she walked over, ¡°Are you eating dinner? Who cooked? It smells divine!¡± The olddy naturally entered the kitchen and brought a set of utensils and tableware out with her as she said, ¡°Guess I¡¯m back right on time for some delicious food.¡± ¡°Nana.¡± Serenity pulled out a chair for the olddy before taking the bowl from her to serve her some soup. Meanwhile, Zachary helped serve Grandma May some couscous. He would know the usual amount to scoop for his nana. ¡°You weren¡¯t at home the whole day today. Where did you wander off to?¡± Both Zachary and Serenity were attentive and filial, which made the old woman really happy. After hearing the question, she said, ¡°Zack, can you not use the word ¡®wander¡¯? I was off doing some serious business.¡± Zachary grabbed a piece of salmon and thoughtfully checked for tiny bones before cing it onto Grandma May¡¯s te. ¡°What serious business could you be up to? Aren¡¯t you just devising ways to fool other families¡¯ precious daughters into marrying your foolish grandsons?¡± She jabbed-back at Zachary without mercy, ¡°And was it not all thanks to your nana¡¯s help that you managed to marry Serenity? ¡°Just my luck to have so many foolish grandsons, one more foolish than the next? They don¡¯t even know how to get a girl. Do you think it¡¯s easy trying to get good matches for you lot?¡± ¡°Pfft-¡± Serenity could not hold it in anymore and burst intoughter. Only Grandma May had the guts to retort against Zachary like that. Each of the York family¡¯s sons was a leader among men, but in their nana¡¯s words, they turned into fools when it came to rtionships, and were even outdoing their foolishness one after another. ¡°Nana, you¡¯re trying to make me die ofughter so you can inherit my flowers, aren¡¯t you?¡± Serenity said as sheughed. Grandma Mayughed too and she reached out to pat Serenity¡¯s back. She said, smiling, ¡°Take it easy. Don¡¯t hurt your stomach fromughing.¡± Chapter 1045 Chapter 1045 Chapter 1045 Zachary helplessly looked at the two women. Once Serenity was doneughing, he said, ¡°Honey, have some soup first.¡± Serenity said in relief, ¡°Luckily, I wasn¡¯t drinking soup earlier, or else I might have spat it out.¡± ¡°Dig in.¡± Grandma Mayughed as she scooped from a dish she liked. After tasting it, she frowned and said, ¡± Seren, these weren¡¯t cooked by you, were they? It tastes a little different from before.¡± ¡°Does it taste bad?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°If you think it tastes bad, I¡¯ll call Kevin right now and get him to pick you up so you can go to the hotel and eat all the delicacies there since my homecooked food isn¡¯t to your taste.¡± ¡°Such a belligerent tone. It must be Zachary¡¯s cooking.¡± Grandma May continued to eat as if nothing had happened and said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, Zack¡¯s cooking hasn¡¯t improved much. You should let him practice more. Let him cook on the weekends and prepare all your meals. With more opportunities to practice, his cooking will get better.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was dark. ¡°Nana, you¡¯re insulting me yet you¡¯re eating my food at the same time.¡± ¡°You never used to cook. If it weren¡¯t for Seren¡¯s influence, I wouldn¡¯t be able to eat your cooking either. I definitely have to eat more now that I have the chance to. Although they don¡¯t taste five-star, they¡¯re still ptable-I won¡¯t die, at least.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Nana, we¡¯re going for a barbecue tomorrow.¡± Serenity changed the topic so they would stop bickering. ¡°You young¡¯uns can go ahead. I¡¯m a bag of old bones with no teeth. How could I eat barbecue?¡± Grandma May did not want to be the third wheel. Right now, she was trying to scope out a good match for Dn York, but she still did not have anyone in mind yet. Sigh¡­ She had too many half-witted grandsons that she even had to worry about their marriages. ¡°We¡¯re going back to Wildridge Manor for the barbecue.¡± Zachary added, ¡°Liberty is going too.¡± Grandma May hummed in acknowledgment and said, ¡°Liberty¡¯s going too? Then Nana will follow you guys back to join in on the fun. You should call your mom and dadter so they can make preparations. Liberty is young, but she represents the elders in Seren¡¯s maiden family.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Got it.¡± Serenity was deeply moved as she listened to their conversation. Her inws did not look down on her family just because her pedigree did not match up with Zachary¡¯s. This was a show of respect for and recognition of her. Since the small gathering the next day was essentially a meeting of the parents, Grandma May got 2/2 Serenity to call Mrs. Stone and invite her and her husband toe along too. Duncan did not expect his act of dragging Zachary out as a shield would turn into a family meeting between the elders of Hunts and Yorks. Liberty had met everyone in the York family before, but she had never been to the real York family home. Therefore, Grandma May attached great importance to this visit and she specially called Liam and Tania to make sure they made ample preparations. Grandma May even tagged everyone in the family group chat. As long as they were in Wiltspoon, they had to return to Wildridge Manor tomorrow. After dinner, Grandma May urged the young couple to go out for a walk. Zacharyined, ¡°The wind is too strong outside.¡± Grandma May red at him. ¡°Don¡¯t you know how toyer up? No matter how strong the wind is, if you¡¯re heavy enough, can it blow you away?¡± Zachary was struck speechless. Was he heavy enough? Had he gotten fat? No way. Seren said he had lost weight and her heart ached to see it. Chapter 1046 Chapter 1046 Chapter 1046 It was after Zachary had lost weight and started having gastric problems again that Serenity felt pity for him and that was how their rtionship got better. Thus, his deception and concealment of his identity hade and gone with the wind. Serenity came out of the bedroom with a jacket on and she had helped grab one for Zachary too. ¡°It¡¯s really windy tonight and the spring chill is still lingering. You should put on a jacket before we go out.¡± Serenity walked over and thoughtfully helped Zachary put on his jacket. His face was full of smiles. Grandma May looked away, unwilling to look at her silly grandson. The couple left for their walk, hand in hand. Meanwhile at the Browns¡¯ rented house, Mrs. Brown came to the door. She was anticipating greeting her son when she heard the door open. Once she saw that it was really Hank, she asked in concern, ¡°How was it? Was it open? Where did Liberty bring Sonny? Did she hide with Sonny somewhere else because we kept disturbing her?¡± Mrs. Brown was hoping that her son would separate from the Yates woman and remarry Liberty, but she knew deep down that was a slim chance. So, Sonny had be the one thing she was most afraid of losing. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. If Liberty went into hiding with Sonny, where would they go to look for them? Hank first asked quietly, ¡°Mom, is Jessica home?¡± ¡°She¡¯s gone out to buy some takeout. I asked her to cook, but she said there were too few ingredients in the fridge and decided to pack some food home. She can¡¯t make concessions at all. Now that the two of you are unemployed and your sources of ie are gone, she still doesn¡¯t know how to cut back on spending.¡± Mrs. Brown was extremely displeased with her new daughter-inw. Hank breathed a sigh of relief and after entering the house, he first went to take a look at the kitchen. Other than vegetables, there were only three eggs left in the fridge. Indeed, the ingredients left in the fridge were too few. ¡°Mom, you and Dad do nothing at home all day but you don¡¯t even help by doing groceries at the market. Even I can¡¯t stand eating just vegetables and eggs every day, let alone Jessica.¡± As long as it was his parents doing the cooking, the food would only consist of a te of in lettuce and three boiled eggs. Yes, just three boiled eggs-one for him and one for his parents each. Jessica had no share of it. Jessica could tolerate it once or twice, but after many times of this happening, Jessica could no longer endure it. ¡°We¡¯re just helping you save money.¡± Mrs. Brown answered as if it was a matter of course. ¡°You guys still have to renovate the house and holding a wedding needs money too. Why don¡¯t you discuss it with the Yates woman and call off the wedding? You guys have already registered your marriage anyway and the wedding gift has been given to her parents. ¡°We¡¯re all one family now anyway, so why hold a wedding? It¡¯s a waste of money and it¡¯s your second marriage. There¡¯s no real need to have another wedding.¡± Hank came out of the kitchen and upromisingly said, ¡°I promised Jessica to hold a grand wedding for her. I can¡¯t disappoint her. This is my second marriage, but it is her first. Women mostly only wear the wedding dress once in their whole life.¡± He had no way of resolving his mother¡¯s resentment for Jessica, but he would not yield on the things he had decided to stand firm on. He still had some money left. The money he provided Jessica with for the renovations and for holding the reception only made up half of his savings. After having lost his job as punishment by Zachary, who knew when he would be able to find a job next? How could he dare spend all his money? He mentioned to Jessica that the marital home needed renovations and that they should furnish it simply because they only had that bit of money. If Jessica wanted to furnish it with ssier stuff, she would have to fork out the money herself. ¡°If you had been as thoughtful toward Liberty back then, my grandson wouldn¡¯t have left my side either. Hurry up and tell me-did Liberty hide away with Sonny?¡± Hank walked to the sofa to sit down, asking, ¡°Where¡¯s Dad?¡± ¡°He¡¯s ying chess at the opposite neighbor¡¯s. He¡¯s having a good time-he doesn¡¯t seem to be worried about anything.¡± ¡°Liberty did not hide away with Sonny. Maybe she closed the shop because they had something urgent came up. I brought Sonny to the park to y for a while. Sonny¡¯s very happy.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good then.¡± Mrs. Brown sighed in relief. Then, she continued, ¡°You need to spend more time with Sonny to nurture your rtionship with him. Or else, you¡¯ll feel frustrated when he calls someone else ¡®dad¡¯.¡± Chapter 1047 Chapter 1047 Chapter 1047 Hank sat down on the sofa and after a moment of silence he said, ¡°That Mr. Lewis seems to be pursuing Liberty.¡± ¡°No, it doesn¡¯t just seem like it. He really is pursuing Liberty. If he didn¡¯t feel anything for Liberty, why is he constantly going to Liberty¡¯s diner?¡± Mrs. Brown heard her son bring this matter up and took this opportunity to advise him. ¡°Hank, look at how Liberty has opened her own business now. And a breakfast diner at that. With her cooking skills, business will definitely be good. ¡°She¡¯s also a very hardworking woman who knows how to get by and is now losing weight. She¡¯s not as ugly as she was before. You see, she can even attract top executives like Mr. Lewis, which means she¡¯s still immensely valuable on the market. ¡°The main thing is, right now, her family is strongly backing her. Don¡¯t even mention that Serenity is Zachary York¡¯s wife-just her rich aunt alone is impressive. I¡¯ve heard Mrs. Stone has a lot of say in the Stone family. ¡°As long as you remarry Liberty, no matter if it¡¯s the Stones or the Yorks supporting you, it would be of great help to you. You could set up your ownpany and be your own boss. How good is that?¡± Mrs. Brown thought optimistically. ¡°That Yates woman can still be your lover-she¡¯s young and pretty enough and has a hot body. But as a wife, she¡¯s not good enough. Look at her! Every day, she goes out the moment it¡¯s bright outside and comes back only when it¡¯s dark. She doesn¡¯t do house chores either. Such azy woman won¡¯t help you amass riches. ¡°And who knows what she goes out to do every day? She¡¯s not even looking for a job but she still dresses up so fancily to go out every day. Hank, be careful that she doesn¡¯t cuckold you. ¡°I reminded you at the beginning that Liberty is better when ites to getting by.¡± Hank¡¯s expression was dark as he said impatiently, ¡°Mom, how many times do I have to tell you that Jessica¡¯s in charge of the renovations for our marital home? She goes out every day first thing in the morning to keep an eye on the workers doing the renovation. I go there to check on the progress often too. ¡°Do you think managing the renovations is easy? Back then, Liberty went out early and came backte to watch over the workers during the whole renovating process too. ¡°Jessica¡¯s the youngest of her family and rarely did housework. She¡¯s still young. You need to give her a chance to hone herself. Don¡¯t keepparing her to Liberty. How old is she and how old is Liberty?¡± He and Liberty were the same age, while Jessica was younger than him by five to six years. ¡°Anyway, you should keep an eye on her. She managed to seduce you, so she could very well seduce other men. In the past, you had a high ie and were her superior and she managed to get benefits from you. Now that you¡¯re both unemployed, who knows if she¡¯ll try to seduce a richer man than you?¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°If you ask me, you¡¯d better break up with that Yates woman and try to get Liberty back. Right now, she¡¯s a sitting duck thatys golden eggs. Whoever marries her has a bright future ahead of them.¡± ¡°Mom, even if I wanted to remarry her, have you ever thought that she¡¯d have to be willing to? Do you think your son is the most outstanding man on earth? Do you think that all the men on earth have died out leaving me thest man standing?¡± Hank retorted unkindly, ¡°Jessica and I are already husband and wife. I¡¯ve already divorced once and I don¡¯t want to get divorced again. Stop saying stuff like this in front of me and stop getting on Jessica¡¯s case. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°She¡¯s your daughter-inw. If you¡¯re mean to her now, once you get old, she won¡¯t be bothered with you either. And don¡¯t set your hopes on my sister. All she knows is toe home and take advantage of us. If there¡¯s nothing she can get out of you, she won¡¯t be bothered with you too. ¡°My brother-inw and my sister have worked for so many years and their monthly ies aren¡¯t low either, but they only use you and dad¡¯s money for their household expenses-the same money which was given by me to you guys for your living expenses. They definitely have much more in savings than I do.¡± Hank had chased his sister away, but his mother was still of one mind with his sister and was hostile toward Jessica. ¡°They can¡¯t bear to spend their own money but keeping to ask me to lend them money. When I refused, she even shamelessly went to harass Liberty. Then, when I chased her out, she even packed up everything useful and everything edible in our home and took them with her when she left! Mom, the daughter you gave birth to is a leech-a leech who only preys on her own family!¡± As the saying goes, out of ten daughters, nine would be leeches, and Chelsea was the worst kind of leech among them. In the past, Hank had not cared because he was richer than his sister at the time. After his rtionship with Liberty had lost all passion, he felt that his sister was truly family for life while Liberty was anything but an outsider, so he was always partial toward his parents and his sister. Now, things were no longer what they used to be-Hank had different thoughts now. Chapter 1048 Chapter 1048 Chapter 1048 Without realizing it, Hank had be his sister¡¯s enabler for many years. Mrs. Brown was at a loss for words. The door opened. Hank dropped the conversation with his mother, guessing that Jessica hade home. As expected, when the door opened, Jessica walked in with two portions of fast food. ¡°Darling, you¡¯re back. You¡¯re right on time-let¡¯s eat. I got two set meals for us.¡± Jessica walked over, carrying the two set meals. She sat down beside Hank and opened a bag to take out one set meal and passed it to Hank. Then, she ced her portion on the coffee table, opened the fast food cover, and began to eat. Hank looked at his mother, then looked at Jessica, and asked, ¡°Darling, did you only get two sets? What about Mom and Dad?¡± Jessica said as she ate, ¡°I didn¡¯t buy any for them. They can cook whatever they want. There are still two packets of instant noodles at home-enough for them to have one each. And there still are three eggs, enough for the three of you to have one each.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. When her inws cooked, they would cook very little. When her mother-inw served them, she would serve her father-inw and Hank arge portion. Mrs. Brown would then serve herself arge portion too, but would never serve her a portion. When Jessica went to help herself, there would only be a little left in the pot. Her mother-inw did it on purpose. Every time Jessica ate at home, her mother-inw would deliberately not buy groceries, and even if she did buy some, she would buy food that Jessica disliked. Even when she just prepared a te of in lettuce and three boiled eggs, it would be just enough for the three of them and there was no share for Jessica as the daughter-inw. If it were not for Hank still on her side, giving her half his share of food and even his boiled egg to her to eat, Jessica would have found it impossible to stay in this house. The more they interacted, the more Jessica understood why Liberty had thanked her after getting divorced. Since they had started it, she would respond in kind. That was why she only bought a set for Hank when ordering takeout. As for her inws- nothing! Mrs. Brown was so angry her chest started hurting and she pointed at someone who was eating with gusto while she herself was on the brink of letting loose a stream of abuse. ¡°Mom, I¡¯ll give you my share. I¡¯ll have instant noodles-I haven¡¯t eaten them in a long time and I want to have some.¡± Hank hurriedly shoved his set meal into his mother¡¯s hands to avoid another conflict erupting between his mother and wife. Mrs. Brown¡¯s heart ached for her son and she mmed the set meal down on the coffee table heavily. She stood up and said angrily, ¡°Do you think I can¡¯t afford a fast food set meal? I have a pension too! Son, let¡¯s go. Call your dad up. We¡¯re going to a restaurant!¡± Jessica turned to look at Hank. Hank immediately surrendered and chose his wife. He said to his mother, ¡°Mom, you go with Dad.¡± Mrs. Brown¡¯s chest hurt with anger once again but finally left in a huff. The family battle had a temporary ceasefire. Chapter 1049 Chapter 1049 Chapter 1049 The first thing the next morning, Duncan got up anxiously. He got changed and went out the door after washing up without even eating breakfast. He was terrified that his mother would shove Lily on him and make him apany her everywhere. In the face of a mother who was always urging him to get married, the best policy was to leave. Truth be told, Duncan could understand where his mother wasing from since he was already thirty- six, after all, and not twenty-six. His eldest nephew was about to get married too while as the youngest uncle, he still had no girlfriend. How could his mother not be worried then? The result of escaping to Brynfield so early in the morning and calling Zachary at the entrance to the neighborhood was- ¡°Go away!¡± Zachary was still lying on his bed with his wife in his arms. When he received the call from his good friend, with a dark expression, he bluntly replied Duncan with those two words. ¡°Why are you so fierce? Considering our many years of friendship, what¡¯s the big deal about me coming over to your ce to have breakfast?¡± ¡°Bro. What time is it now? You came over so early! You came over without even eating breakfast, is there a tiger in your house that wants to eat you?¡± Zachary replied Duncan hotly. He had not nned to cook today and had specially asked Kevin to bring breakfast from the hotel since it would have been on the way as Kevin was heading back to the manor too. If Kevin could hear Zachary¡¯s thoughts, he would have said that it was not on the way at all and that because his eldest cousin had asked for it, his route had to be ¡°on the way¡±. Duncan took a look at the time and said, ¡°It¡¯s almost seven. I decided I woulde for breakfast so naturally, I came earlier. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Zachary, you¡¯re a psychic. There really is a tiger at home-a tigress, in fact. I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll be consumed until no bones are left, so I came to your ce to escape. You¡¯re my best shield, you know.¡± Zachary was speechless. When it came to Duncan who always spoke the truth, Zachary had no way of countering him. When Serenity woke up and opened her eyes to see her man was still lying beside her, but had an inexplicable expression on his face, she asked, ¡°Babe, who is it?¡± ¡°A refugee,¡± Zachary said as he hung up on Duncan. A refugee? Serenity did not respond for a moment. She asked curiously. ¡°Who¡¯s the refugee?¡± ¡°Who else could it be, other than Duncan? Josh has Ms. Sox now, so he no longer needs to take refuge away from home.¡± Serenity blinked as understanding dawned on her. Sheughed and said, ¡°Are the Lewises aggressively nagging him to get married?¡± ¡°I think Mrs. Lewis must have invited some rich youngdy who she has set her sights on to be her daughter-inw to stay at their house and Duncan doesn¡¯t like it. That¡¯s why he fled here toe and use me as a shield.¡± Serenity sat up and hugged her husband in sympathy, but her face showed amusement. ¡°Mr. Lewis is thirty 2/2 -six this year, isn¡¯t he? You can¡¯t me his family for being anxious about him. If it were me and I had a son that old who was still unmarried, I¡¯d be anxious too. ¡°What time is it now?¡± Serenity asked as she picked up her phone to look at the time. ¡°It¡¯s time to get up and make breakfast.¡± As she said that, she lifted the covers to get out of bed. Zachary hugged her and pulled her back, falling back onto the bed together. ¡°There¡¯s no need to make breakfast today. I¡¯ve asked Kevin to bring a few servings of breakfast with him when he passes by here before he leaves for the manor.¡± ¡°When did you ask him?¡± ¡°While you were asleep.¡± Zachary indulged in her presence as he hugged her. ¡°Let¡¯s lie back down for a while. It¡¯s fine even if you can¡¯t sleep. I¡¯ll be extremely happy if I can just hug you like this.¡± Serenity smacked his big, unbridled hands away. Liar. It would be weirder if she believed him. Men¡¯s words while in bed could not be trusted. Chapter 1050 Chapter 1050 Chapter 1050 ¡°Mr. Lewis is already here. Hurry up, get up, and go outside to bring him in,¡± Serenity said as she once again got out of bed. Zachary tried to pull her back onto the bed once more, but she expertly dodged him. As he watched her walk to her wardrobe to take some clothes, he said, ¡°It¡¯s not like I asked him to come over and wait. He wanted toe over, so just let him wait. Once Kevin is here, we can get Jim to go out and lead them both in to save Jim from making the trip twice.¡± Serenity picked out the clothes she was going to change into and also grabbed a suit for Zachary, ¡°I¡¯m on leave, so I¡¯m not wearing a suit.¡± Serenity turned back, holding the suit, and very quickly grabbed a different set of clothes for him to change into. She walked into the bathroom to change, and Zachary said to his wife¡¯s receding back as he held his clothes, ¡°Honey, we¡¯re already an old married couple. There¡¯s nothing to be embarrassed about changing in the same room.¡± Serenity could not be bothered to respond. In private, that pervert¡¯s words became increasingly provocative and flirtatious. Some things really were just in a man¡¯s nature and did not need to be taught for him to know it. When Serenity exited the bathroom, Zachary was still sitting topless on the bed. Seeing here out, he spread his arms and a smile bloomed on his handsome face. ¡°Honey, wanna hug.¡± Serenity was speechless. She walked over and snatched away the shirt he held in his hands. Then she pulled him up and helped him put it on as she said, ¡°If you get a cold because you didn¡¯t put your shirt on, I¡¯ll make you get jabs every day and suffer from the pain!¡± Zachary dropped his smile andined, ¡°Honey, am I not at all charming? You¡¯re actually not moved at all. Are you not going to count how many packs I have?¡± ¡°We¡¯re already an old married couple. How could I not know what your body looks like? If you want to show it off, you can wait until summer arrives and then show it off. What¡¯s the point of showing off your body now? If you catch a cold, it¡¯ll get all twisted. That¡¯s what you¡¯ll get if you try to look cool and not keep yourself warm.¡± After buttoning his shirt, Serenity stood on her tiptoes to whisper something into his ears. Nobody knew what she said but a certain Mr. York was all smiles and hugged Serenity tightly before he returned to his usual serious gentlemanly image. ¡°Honey, you¡¯re a rotten egg if you¡¯re lying to me.¡± ¡°Fine, fine, I¡¯m a rotten egg if I¡¯m lying to you. A person can¡¯t turn into a rotten egg after lying anyway- aren¡¯t you still human after lying to me for months?¡± Cat got Zachary¡¯s tongue immediately. He was overwhelmed with guilt. After dawdling for about another ten minutes, the couple came out of their bedroom. Grandma May had already gotten up and was doing yoga on the balcony. Serenity asked the man beside her in a whisper, ¡°Nana does yoga?¡± ¡°She¡¯s constantly wandering about outside. Sometimes, she¡¯ll go to the park to brag with people of the same age, so she picked a few things up that way.¡± Grandma May¡¯s ears were vignt and she replied to her grandson, ¡°I go to the park often to brag to my peers about my nine grandsons. Other than my youngest two who are still studying, my other seven grandsons are all outstanding. They¡¯re handsome, rich, filial, and loyal.¡± Zachary was lost for words. Could he say that Grandma May was actually bragging? ¡°When I praise you, it¡¯s like you¡¯re deaf. But when I say something negative about you, your hearing is suddenly very sharp.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Grandma May stopped her yoga flow and added, ¡°That¡¯s because when you praise me, my hearing isn¡¯t very good and I can¡¯t hear clearly, so I want you to praise me more and louder. When you scold me, my hearing¡¯s great so I don¡¯t miss a thing.¡± Zachary pursed his lips. Forget it. He could never win against his Nana. Young people should not stubbornly argue with their elders. He should respect his elders and care for the young, after all. Grandma May asked as she walked in, ¡°Zack, are you not making breakfast today? I wanted to freeload on Serenity¡¯s privilege and taste your cooking again.¡± Chapter 1051 Chapter 1051 Chapter 1051 Zachary responded faintly, ¡°Nana, didn¡¯t you say I¡¯m bad at cooking?¡± ¡°You are, but I¡¯m your nana. As bad as your food tastes, I¡¯ll honor you so you¡¯ll have some confidence.¡± Zachary was speechless. Ring, ring, ring¡­ His phone rang, so he answered it to remove himself from bickering with his nana. He had never been able to win arguments against her. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯m at the entrance of your neighborhood, but I can¡¯t enter without an ess card. Duncan is here too. He said he has been waiting for half an hour.¡± It was Kevin who called. Their nana informed them in their family group chatst night that everyone in Wiltspoon had to return to the manor today. Serenity¡¯s elders were going to visit for the first time, so the others had to be home to wee them as a form of respect toward her. After all, Serenity would be the wife of the head of their family in the future. Her authority should be established bit by bit. ¡°You came real quick.¡± Zachary added indifferently, ¡°I¡¯ll ask Jim to go out and bring you in.¡± It was still early, so neither Jim nor Mrs. Lane had gone to All You Can Eat to help out yet. ¡°Okay.¡± Kevin was sensible enough to not say much after being told by his big brother that he came over quickly. After their call ended, he wound down the window to prop his hand on the car door and asked Duncan, who was in the car opposite his, ¡°Duncan, Zachary asked me to send breakfast over, so it¡¯s fine for me toe early. Why did youe so early as well? You even came earlier than me. ¡°He just praised me foring really fast, as if he wanted me toe at eight o¡¯clock. Howe you have to wait though? Tell me, how did you offend him?¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Duncan cleared his throat and answered honestly, ¡°My mom invited her friend¡¯s daughter to stay at my ce and wants to set me up with her. She initially asked me to apany Ms. Harmon the whole of today, but I don¡¯t want to, so I said your brother had asked me to join him for a barbecue today. I just said that off the top of my head. ¡°My mom didn¡¯t want to give up and wanted me to bring Ms. Harmon along. I told her that your brother doesn¡¯t like the presence of young women apart from his close ones and managed to stop Ms. Harmon froming along. In other words, I used your brother as a shield, so he made me wait here for half an .hour.¡± Kevinughed and said, ¡°No wonder he suddenly said he wanted to bring Serenity back to the manor for a barbecue. It turns out that it was your idea. Even so, he wouldn¡¯t go so far as to make you wait here. You came too early-half an hour early. He¡¯s a man with a wife, and yet you came early in the morning to disturb their sleep¡­¡± Duncan responded, ¡°I didn¡¯t think that far.¡± He only thought that his mom would not insist on asking him to apany Lily if he came to find Zachary. Kevinughed out loud. Out of his big brother¡¯s best friends, one was mischievous and crafty, while the other was straightforward and honest. Soon after, Jim appeared at the entrance. He brought the two of them inside. Ten minutester, Kevin pressed the doorbell. The tall Duncan was rather guilty after being pointed out by Kevin, so he shrunk behind Kevin. Serenity came to open the door. ¡°Serenity.¡± Kevin greeted her while entering the house. ¡°Zachary asked me to send breakfast over.¡± ¡°S¡­ Ms. Hunt.¡± Duncan almost called her by her first name as Kevin did. He changed the term of address aftering back to his senses. ¡°Kevin, Mr. Lewis.¡± Chapter 1052 Chapter 1052 Chapter 1052 Serenity greeted Kevin and Duncan with a smile. She closed the door after Duncan entered the house. By the time she turned around, she saw that Grandma May had asked everyone to gather for breakfast. Zachary doted on his wife and knew what Serenity liked to eat, so he asked Kevin to bring some of her favorites. There was plenty to choose from. Even though Duncan showed up uninvited, there was enough food for everyone. After having a full meal, Grandma May instructed Duncan, ¡°Duncan, go to Liberty¡¯s ce now to pick up her and her son, then go to my ce together.¡± Duncan¡¯s eyes flickered. He immediately wondered why he was summoned again. He asked, ¡°Grandma May, how many people have you asked to join the barbecue?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know? In any case, I notified everyone in the family group chat. Everyone in Wiltspoon is to return to the manor today.¡± Duncan was speechless. It sounded like the Yorks were going to have a family meeting. Duncan only wanted to gather with a few friends. He wanted to have a barbecue, drink some wine, and enjoy the spring scenery at the manor with them. How did it turn into the Yorks¡¯ family gathering? ¡°Go. It¡¯s gettingte, and it¡¯ll be almost an hour¡¯s drive back.¡± This was because the traffic was usually worse in the city and would take up a lot of time. ¡°Seren and I will take Zack¡¯s car. Kevin doesn¡¯t know where Liberty¡¯s rental house is, so we can only ask you to go pick them up, Duncan. Hurry up and stop dawdling. You were the one who suggested the barbecue get-together.¡± Duncan epted his fate and took his car keys. He said while walking, ¡°Grandma May, I only suggested a small gathering of a few friends. Now that you spread the news, it turned into a gathering of the handsome men of Yorks. ¡°You didn¡¯t consider how I would feel. I¡¯ll feel inferior.¡± Grandma May replied, ¡°If you feel inferior, go fix the scar on your face. Sonny doesn¡¯t let you carry him because of that. But then again, he¡¯s pretty brave. Otherwise, if he¡¯s slightly timid, he might cry, have nightmares, and scream when he sees you.¡± Duncan touched the scar on his face and wondered, ¡®Is it that scary? ¡®Does Sonny not let me carry him because of the scar on my face?¡¯ Duncan seemed reluctant to pick up Liberty and her son, but in fact, he ran away happily once he left Zachary¡¯s house. He ran faster than a cheetah. He arrived at Liberty¡¯s rented apartment in the shortest time possible. Serenity had informed her sister in advance, so Liberty was already waiting downstairs with her son when Duncan arrived. Liberty also bought a lot of things. It was her first time visiting the inws, so she must show respect and courtesy. ¡°Why have you bought so many things?¡± Duncan got out of his car and walked toward the mother and son. He said, ¡°The Yorks don¡¯tck anything.¡± ¡°It¡¯s my first time visiting, so I can¡¯t go empty-handed.¡± Duncan helped her carry the things she bought into the car. The trunk and the inside of the car were filled. Liberty had gone all-out for her sister. Duncan suspected that she must have wanted to buy everything from the mall for the Yorks to do her sister proud. Nheless, Duncan liked the way the Hunt sisters got along. ¡°Sonny,e, I¡¯ll carry you to the car.¡± Duncan wanted to carry Sonny, but he climbed into the car by himself. He withdrew his hands and said to Liberty with a smile, ¡°He¡¯s a kid with a temper.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Since his car was not installed with a child safety seat, Sonny could not sit alone in the back seat. As such, Liberty naturally sat with her son. Duncan got into the car and turned to look at the mother and son in the back, thinking he would install a child safety seat in the back seat tomorrow. He rarely had the opportunity to pick up the mother and son, but it was always good to be prepared. Chapter 1053 Chapter 1053 Chapter 1053 Wildridge Manor was the home built with love by Zachary¡¯s grandfather for his wife. It covered an extremely vast area. Thendscape of the manor was artificially created ording to Grandma May¡¯s preferences. Grandma May liked an antique and ssic feel, hence Wildridge Manor was built like a garden. The gate of the manor opened. It was worth noting that the sons of the Yorks usually lived in their respective vis and would only return to the manor during festivities such as Christmas and New Year¡¯s for a few days to apany the elders. Apart from those times, it would be difficult to see them here Today, the sons returned and were especially early A few of them even had breakfast with their parents Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. As for their parents, regardless of the ns they made, they turned them down and waited conscientiously for Grandma May to return. Serenity was going to Wildridge Manor with Zachary for the first time. On the way, when she listened to Grandma May talk about the scenery at the manor, she began to long for it. ¡°Nana, Zachary and I will live in the manor when we¡¯re older so we won¡¯t be bored during our retirement ording to Grandma May, Wildridge Manor was spacious and beautiful. There was also a clear stream at the foot of the hill, so they could fish in their spare time. A few of the nearby hills also belonged to the Yorks. Besides one of them being turned into a park, the others became orchards. The Yorks¡¯ orchards were naturally taken care of by workers. Seasonal fruits were nted there and were supplied daily to Wiltspoon Hotel to ensure the hotel guests would always get fresh fruits. ¡°It¡¯ll only be nice to retire in the manor if the husband and wife are still here. As for me, who¡¯s by myself, as beautiful as the ce is, I can¡¯t bring myself to appreciate it.¡± The man who built the beautiful manor for her and apanied her through the four seasons-enjoyed flowers in spring, admired lotuses in summer, went hiking in autumn, and shared his warmth with her in winter-was no longer here ¡°Seren.¡± Grandma May took Serenity¡¯s hand and said, ¡°May you have someone to rely on and take shelter from all your life Cherish your happy moments with Zack. It¡¯s normal for couples to have conflicts, but learn tomunicate with, trust, and understand each other. When you¡¯re old, you¡¯ll find that your partner is the only one who can be by your side.¡± To be married young, and to bepanions for a lifetime. ¡°Nana, we¡¯lle back often to keep youpany too when we have time.¡± Serenity knew that Grandma May had a deep rtionship with herte husband. When she first met Grandma May, she often talked about some past events with herte husband. Grandma May quickly put away her sentimentality andughed. ¡°It¡¯s time for young people like you to work hard and struggle Time is precious, so don¡¯t waste it on an old woman like me. If you want to be filial, both of you give me a great-granddaughter as soon as you can. A great-grandson is fine as well. I¡¯ll like them regardless of their gender. Tll be delighted to have a great-grandchild. Given my physical condition, I think I¡¯ll be able to live to 99 years old, if not 100 years old.¡± Serenity was speechless. She did not expect the topic of bearing a child to be brought up in their conversation. ¡°Seren.¡± Grandma May leaned in to Serenity¡¯s ear and asked softly. ¡°You two aren¡¯t taking contraceptive measures, right?¡± The olddy really wanted a great-grandchild. Of course, it would be better if it was a great-granddaughter. She had been very enthusiastic about choosing wives for her grandchildren, asking them to bring their chosen ones home within a year. She thought that if she had many granddaughters-inw, at least one of them would be able to give her a great-grandchild. Serenity was a little embarrassed, but she still shook her head. Zachary wanted to be a father, so why would they take any contraceptive measures? Before knowing Zachary¡¯s real identity, the couple lived in harmony, but there was nothing in Serenity¡¯s belly. Perhaps the more they wanted a child, the harder it was for her to get pregnant ¡°Your fate is just not here yet. There¡¯s no hurry. You haven¡¯t been married for a long time anyway, so there¡¯s no hurry, okay?¡± Chapter 1054 Chapter 1054 Chapter 1054 Grandma May patted the back of Serenity¡¯s hand as she spoke. ¡°You and Zack haven¡¯t held your wedding yel anyway. It¡¯s not toote to have a child after the wedding. You should enjoy your romantic time together during this time.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. It was fine as long as the young married couple was not taking contraception methods. They would have a child sooner orter. Serenity responded with a hum. She was not in a hurry, so she would just go with the flow. ¡°Zack ¡± Grandma May suddenly asked Zachary, who was driving, ¡°Has Callum made a move?¡± ¡°How would I know? I only care about what he does in thepany. I don¡¯t care about what he does after work, He¡¯s an adult and not a three-year-old kid. He doesn¡¯t need his big brother watching over him.¡± Grandma May choked. ¡°Nana, do you mean Camryn7¡± Serenity added. Tve seen her in person. Grandma May had long known that Serenity and Camryn had met She even knew Serenity had helped Camryn at the banquet, but she pretended not to know since Serenity did not bring it up with her. When Serenity stood up for Camryn at the banquet, a sharp-tongued person even called Tania the next day to stir up trouble. After being reprimanded by Tania, Mrs. Walker even went around saying that Tania was very defensive of her daughter-inw Following that, everyone in the circle knew Tania was a protective mother-inw. Even though many people thought that she and Serenity did not get along, nobody dared gossip about Serenity in front of her anymore Grandma May was exceptionally satisfied with her daughter-inw¡¯s approach. No matter what, a daughter-inw was a part of the family. Tania would not allow outsiders to make thoughtless remarks about Serenity If the Yorks wanted to be wealthy for a long time, their family needed to be harmonious. Marriages in the family would be especially important. As the saying went, a good daughter-inw would lead to good children and grandchildren When Grandma May was looking for suitable matches for her sons, she made it clear that it was not one¡¯s family background that was important, but one¡¯s character All of her daughters-inw had good characters. Now that it was her grandchildren¡¯s turn, she still selected matches for them ording to the same standard. ¡°What do you think of her?¡± Grandma May asked Serenity with a smile. She was also very pleased with how Serenity stood up for Camryn at the banquet Serenity would be the missus in charge of the Yorks in the future. She needed to know how to stick together with her sisters-inw. 1 only met her once, so I can¡¯t tell yet. That said, I can be sure from what she said that she¡¯s not as weak as she looks Zachary said that she¡¯s a person with a story Zachary suspected that Camryn¡¯s biological father was killed by her own mother in conjunction with her stepfather. She lost the protection of her father at a young age, and her mother was more ruthless than any stepmother could ever be. It was certainly not simple for Camryn to be able toe this far. ¡°She¡¯s Callum¡¯s story, so let him find out. We¡¯ll watch the show from the side.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity looked like she was eager to watch the show. She believed that the others had also been watching the drama unfold between her and Zachary for a long time. It was her turn to watch the shows of her brothers-inw now. ¡°Nana, what¡¯s the name of Camryn¡¯s flower shop? I¡¯ll bring her business someday when I have time.¡± ¡°Her store has a very random name. It¡¯s called Spring Blossoms.¡± Serenity remembered the name of Camryn¡¯s flower shop. With someone to chat with, the journey did not feel long. They soon arrived at Wildridge Manor. Chapter 1055 Chapter 1055 Chapter 1055 Grandma May was d to see the manor¡¯s gate open. She turned to look at Duncan¡¯s car behind them. Liberty and her son were in his car. Following behind Duncan¡¯s car was Darrell¡¯s family of three Clive had to keep the pregnant Alicepany because she was having morning sickness. She vomited everything she ate and only wanted to stay in bed every day, so it was not convenient for them to get out of the house. The second son of the Stones was rarely home, and Mrs. Stone did not ask him toe with. It would be enough for her and her husband to show up with Elisa. Zachary led everyone to park their cars in the open parking lot Sam, the manor¡¯s head butler, weed everyone with a smile. While Zachary opened the door to get out of his car, Sam opened the door for Old Mrs York and reached out to support her. Unsurprisingly, she pushed him away and refused his help-it would make her look weak when she was clearly strong ¡°Old Mrs York.¡± Sam smiled and greeted her with respect. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Grandma May waited for Serenity to walk to her side and said, ¡°Seren, this is Sam, the manor¡¯s head butler. He has been working with us for over 20 years and watched Zachary and his brothers grow up¡± Sam was the head butler who had managed many butlers. Due to the fine duties at the manor, every type of work was looked after by a butler The exception was that if those butlers had unsolvable problems would they turn to Sam so he could deal with them In a way, the management at Wildridge Manor was simr to that of York Corporation. Hello, Uncle Sam.¡± Sam had been working at the manor for over 20 years and watched Zachary and his brothers grow up. hence he was considered an elder at the manor. As such, Serenity greeted him as a junior. ¡°Good day, missus¡± When Sam was smiling. Serenity could sense him sizing her up. She guessed that she must be famous in the manor Duncan came over with Sonny in his arms. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny wanted to cry and pouted. He stretched his hands when he saw Serenity as he wanted her to carry him instead. Duncan handed Sonny over to Serenity and said helplessly, ¡°Sometimes, he wants me to carry him; sometimes, when I carry him, it¡¯s almost like he just got bitten by a tiger. ¡°I¡¯ll go help your sister carry some stuff Duncan only meant to send Sonny over. He went back to carry some stuff with Liberty. Besides Liberly, Mrs. Stone also prepared a lot of gifts, which filled the back their bodyguard¡¯s car entirely. Liam and Tania walked out to the house. Soon, they were followed by two middle-aged couples. They were Zachary¡¯s uncles and aunts. Serenity had met the Yorks. It was just her first timeing to the manor. Duncan sighed internally when he saw so many people. He never thought that his random excuse would turn into a meeting between the Yorks and the Hunts. Serenity and Zachary greeted the elders together. After responding with a smile, Tania warmly greeted Liberty as well as Mr. and Mrs. Stone before inviting them into the house. Although Liberty was still young, it was undeniable that she had raised Serenity and became a mother figure to her little sister Tania treated her inws, Liberty, with respect. She did not have much to say to Mrs. Stone, though. Perhaps it was because their sons were rivals for many years. Chapter 1056 Chapter 1056 Chapter 1056 Now, Tania and Mrs. Stone still had to sit together. Tania took Liberty¡¯s hand affectionately and smiled as she said, ¡°Liberty, just bring yourself next time, and don¡¯t spend so much money on gifts.¡± Liberty responded with a smile. ¡°I didn¡¯t buy much, just some small gifts.¡± Tania looked at Sonny, who was being carried by Serenity. She asked, ¡°Should I carry Sonny?¡± Duncan, who was carrying a bunch of stuff for Liberty, interrupted at this time. ¡°Aunt Tania, Sonny is very picky. In any case, he doesn¡¯t want me to carry him.¡± Tania looked at Duncan, whose hands were upied. He looked like Liberty¡¯s porter In actuality, Sam had weed everyone and would arrange for people to carry the things brought by Liberty and Mrs. Stone no matter how many there were. There was no need for a guest like Duncan to do the work. Was Duncan trying to show off? A wise person who could see through the truth would not expose it. Tania smiled and said to Duncan, Duncan, Sonny doesn¡¯t want you to carry him because you look scary. You should heed your mother¡¯s advice and go get that scar removed.¡± The Yorks had a deep friendship with the Lewises. Tania knew Mrs. Lewis had advised Duncan countless times to do minor cosmetic surgery to get rid of the scar. Once he regained his handsome looks, he would not need to worry about not being able to get a wife and would not have been single till now Back then, whenever Tania and Mrs. Lewis met, theyined about their sons being unromantic and not knowing how to pursuedies. They were worried that Zachary and Duncan would be single forever Now, Zachary was living a happily married life. Even Josh had hit it off with Jasmine with Zachary¡¯s help. Duncan was the only one without a target. Mrs. Lewis was so anxious that her hair was turning gray. She bluntly said that she had given birth to a disobedient son Sonny showed Tania respect by stretching his arms for her to carry him. The little one thought that his uncle¡¯s mother was as beautiful as his mother He liked it! This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. After waiting for everyone to greet each other, Grandma May said, ¡°It¡¯s windy outside, so let¡¯s head in.¡± Tania carried Sonny and invited Liberty into the house, whereas Grandma May said to Mrs Stone, ¡°Mrs Stone, after you. Mrs. Stone quickly replied, ¡°Old Mrs. York, call me Drey.¡± Her maiden name was Audrey Fisher Grandma May smiled and said. ¡°I used to wonder if I¡¯d be able to invite you over as our guest, Drey. Now, thanks to Seren, I can finally do so.¡± The olddy admired Audrey very much. When she was young, Grandma May had tried to snatch her from Stone Group for her eldest son. However, Audrey¡¯s father-inw was as discerning as Grandma May was. Besides, Audrey was an employee of Stone Group at that time, so the Stones had the advantage. Darrell was quick to strike, and Old Mr. Stone backed his son and fully supported him to pursue her In the end, the Stones had Audrey. Their marriage uplifted the mood of the whole family. Mr. and Mrs. Stone entered the house with Grandma May. Audrey responded with a smile as they walked, ¡°I¡¯ve also been meaning to visit you, Old Mrs. York. You¡¯ve always been a figure of admiration and learning for us.¡± ¡°Now that we¡¯re rtives, we should visit each other often in the future.¡± Mrs. Stone replied to her. ¡°That goes without saying ¡± Upon entering the guests took their seats and praised each other¡¯s children. Following that, they discussed Zachary and Serenity¡¯s wedding. Both sides agreed to first pick an auspicious day, and it should not be too soon. They needed time to prepare as well Zachary was the eldest son of the Yorks and was also at the wheel. His wedding with Serenity must be grand and lively Grandma May took out a piece of paper as if she was performing magic. Several lucky and suitable dates for the wedding were written on it. ¡°Drey, Liberty, these are some good dates I had a fortune-teller choose for the young couple. How about you take a look at when would be a suitable date?¡± Grandma May handed the paper to Mrs. Stone Chapter 1057 Chapter 1057 Chapter 1057 For easiermunication, Audrey and Liberty sat together after they entered the house. Audrey took the paper handed to her by Grandma May and looked at it with Liberty. In the end, the aunt and niece picked a date that was neither too far nor too near. ¡°Let¡¯s go with this date-it¡¯s neither too soon norte. We both have ample time to get ready,¡± Audrey said to the elders of the Yorks as she pointed at the date she and Liberty had chosen Since her sister was no longer around, Audrey was ready to take over the responsibility and organize her niece¡¯s wedding She would definitely let Serenity marry into the Yorks in style and not let anyone look down on her. Grandma May. Tania, and the others had nothing to say about the date selected by Audrey. In any case, no matter which date was chosen by the inws, Grandma May had carefully shortlisted them. Lastly, they asked Zachary and Serenity for their opinion. Serenity had noment. On the other hand, Zachary looked at the date selected by the elders and made some calctions in his head. The wedding day would be during Serenity¡¯s menstruation, so it would be bad for their wedding night Therefore, Zachary raised his objection and said. ¡°This date wouldn¡¯t work. Choose another one.¡± Grandma May asked in confusion, ¡°Why not? The nearest date is only ten days away, which would be a bit of a rush. This date is just right. Both of our families can be well-prepared. ¡°As for the other date, it¡¯ll be muchter, after fall. If you¡¯re willing to wait that long, we have nothing to say¡± Zachary was not willing to hold the wedding ceremony after fall when spring had just passed, so fall would not be here until sometimeter. He said, ¡°Let¡¯s just go with the first date. It¡¯ll be just the beginning of July in ten days. It won¡¯t be too warm either, so it¡¯ll be suitable for us to hold the wedding¡± Grandma May was not too supportive of changing the date. She thought it would be too hurried to prepare for a grand wedding in ten days Zack, tell me why the date chosen by Liberty and your aunt won¡¯t work. I had a famous fortune-teller pick some lucky dates for youst year.¡± The fortune-teller mentioned by Grandma May was undoubtedly the one who said that Zachary and Serenity were destined to be husband and wife forever Grandma May especially trusted that fortune-teller at the moment and thought he was really something. Then again, a fortune teller would only put himself out there if he was indeed something Zachary fell silent for a while before he said, ¡°It¡¯s inconvenient for me.¡± Everyone else was speechless Serenity instantly blushed after understanding the meaning behind Zachary¡¯s words She secretly pinched the man beside her. ¡°Ten days is still too rushed. Since you think the day we selected isn¡¯t suitable, let¡¯s wait a few more months and hold the wedding after fall. You¡¯ve made Seren suffer a few times, so you mustn¡¯t let her down at the wedding Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Ater date will also allow for proper preparation.¡± Zachary was not very happy, but he no longer objected to it. ¡°Aren¡¯t you here for a barbecue today? Zack, you young people should go ahead. Just grill two drumsticks for me. I don¡¯t have any teeth, so I can only eat drumsticks.¡± Drumsticks were meaty, juicy, and yummy! Duncan and Josh exchanged nces. They could finally have their barbecue. Seeing as the two families were discussing Zachary and Serenity¡¯s wedding, Duncan and the others did not want to interrupt, nor did they dare slip away-they could only wait conscientiously. At the same time, they witnessed how thick-faced their old friend was. Sure enough, a married man was unusually thick-faced. Josh touched the frank but tactless guy next to him and asked softly, ¡°Duncan, have you learned it?¡± Duncan looked confused. He asked Josh in return, ¡°Learned what?¡± Chapter 1058 Chapter 1058 Chapter 1058 Jasmine, who was sitting next to Josh, stuck her head out to see Duncan¡¯s puzzled face. She pursed her lips and smiled. Duncan and Zachary were the same. Josh, on the other hand, had a high IQ and EQ. Among the three of them, he yed the role of a consultant. Elisa and Remy were chatting happily. Remy was also only able to sit still because Elisa was talking to him. Otherwise, he would feel so troubled that he would want to slip away. He was most afraid of such an asion. Seeing Old Mrs. York was likened to seeing the boss of his family. His grandmother was also always worried about his and his brothers¡¯ marriages. Fortunately, Remy¡¯s grandmother was not as active as Grandma May Even so, she had handed them over to Remy¡¯s sister-inw to manage their marriages This was because Jane had the potential to be a matchmaker. Josh stared at Duncan for a while and said, ¡°Tactless people can¡¯t use 0.25mm pencil leads¡± ¡°I don¡¯t like to use 0 25mm pencil leads anyway-they¡¯re too thin. I use 0.5mm pencil leads at least for my mechanical pencils¡± Josh simply turned to talk lovingly with Jasmine He could not be bothered talking to Duncan anymore Duncan was speechless What did Josh mean? Sam, who had disappeared for a while, appeared again. He walked toward Zachary and said respectfully. ¡°Mr. Zachary, the grill and ingredients are ready.¡± Zachary responded to him and helped Serenity get up. He then said to the elders, ¡°Nana, we¡¯ll go start our barbecue.¡± ¡°Go ahead.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Zachary had asked Mr. and Mrs. Stone. After making sure that they did not want to join the youngsters, he took Serenity away and invited his good friends to leave the main house. Once everyone left the main house and walked in the picturesque courtyard, Elisa approached Serenity Zachary let go of Serenity¡¯s hand duly to let the cousins talk while he entertained Remy Zachary had invited Remy here, but he had not had the time to entertain him properly. ¡°Seren, since the wedding date for you and Zachary has been postponed, I¡¯m going to talk to you about investments. Otherwise, I wouldn¡¯t dare keep you upied while you¡¯re busy preparing for the wedding Jasmine joined them as well. ¡°Elisa, you can¡¯t be biased. You must count me in if you have a profitable project I want to invest as well and make money so I can be rich.¡± Elisa teased her, ¡°Do you not want to be the head of intelligence? You can make a lot of money by selling information Besides, you¡¯ll be a rich woman if you marry Josh.¡± Jasmine responded without blushing at all, ¡°Who would mind having too much money? I¡¯ll be happier spending my hard-earned money.¡± She had acquiesced to her rtionship with Josh as a couple. Serenity agreed with her best friend¡¯s perspective. Their husbands¡¯ money must be spent. If they did not spend the money earned by their husbands, other people would spend their money for them. That said, they should also be capable of making money Serenity wanted to make money more than her two best friends did. She also wanted to rebuild her career to close the gap between Zachary and her. ¡°Let¡¯s talk about itter when we¡¯re seated.¡± Elisa kept them in suspense but her two best friends did not wait a second longer to chase her. Elisa ran for a bit and instinctively hid behind Remy when she saw him. ¡°Mr. Johnson, help me stop them.¡± Remy said with a gentle smile, ¡°I might not be able to stop them.¡± Serenity and Jasmine stopped fooling around when they saw Elisa hide behind Remy instinctively. They exchanged a look, giggled, and turned to return to their partners. Elisa thought to herself, ¡°Why are they grinning so strangely?¡± Chapter 1059 Chapter 1059 Chapter 1059 ¡°Mr. Johnson, do you think Serenity and Jasmine were smiling strangely?¡± Since they stopped chasing her, Elisa walked side by side with Remy. She looked back at them as she walked Elisa saw them whispering with their men. She would be lying to herself if she said she was not jealous, especially of Serenity This was because Serenity¡¯s partner was Zachary, whom Elisa had a crush on for years. Zachary treated her coldly and did not look her in the eye in the past. Elisa thought that it was his nature and that he would never be gentle his whole life. After witnessing the way Zachary and Serenity got along. Elisa realized that it was not that he did not know how to be gentle, but that side of him was not for her Of course, Elisa was simply envious. She no longer had feelings for Zachary Especially when Zachary had acknowledged Elisa as his cousin-inw, Elisa knew the man would never belong to her There were many fishes in the sea, so Elisa did not need to be hung up on him. As long as Zachary treated Serenity well, Elisa was willing to give her sincere blessings to the married couple Remy¡¯s smile was as warm as a spring breeze. 1 didn¡¯t notice how strangely they were smiling. ¡°I must be overthinking.¡± Elisa smiled as if nothing happened Zachary invited you here, right? ¡°Mm, Mr. York and I are quite close. He was afraid I¡¯d be lonely in Willspoon by myself, so he invited me over to join the fun¡± In actuality, Remy was closer to Josh as Josh was in charge of the business dealings between their families ¡°I thought you¡¯d return to Annenburg during the weekends. It doesn¡¯t take long to fly there, right? A little more than two hours?¡± ¡°You¡¯re right, but I¡¯m responsible for the business in Wiltspoon for the long term, so I rarely go home if nothing importantes up. It¡¯s also tiring to always go back and forth ¡°On weekends, I¡¯ll either sleep at home for a day or go hiking, y basketball, or have a barbecue with some friends In summer, we can also go surfing or fishing in the sea.¡± Elisa responded with a smile, ¡°You make quite good ns when you¡¯re on break. Since I¡¯m not working now, I¡¯m bored doing nothing at home. It¡¯s tiring to go shopping all the time.¡± She had long been tired of days where she only spent money. She also wanted to get the taste of making money, so she began learning to invest. Serenity was willing to be her partner, and her family was also supportive of her ¡°Once my house is renovated and I move in, we¡¯ll be neighbors. We can visit each other on weekends, or I¡¯ll ask you to join me during festivities? Remy said as he turned to look at Elisa. ¡°Sure, but it¡¯ll take some time before your ce is fully renovated, right? I remember that mine took a long while I was still in elementary school at that time ¡± Remy hummed and replied, ¡°Renovation takes some time indeed, but where I currently live isn¡¯t far from your ce. It¡¯ll take about 20 minutes if I drive and there isn¡¯t traffic, but I can¡¯t be sure if there¡¯s no traffic. ¡°As long as you¡¯re keen, I can invite you for fun activities in the future.¡± Elisa said with a smile, ¡°Other than golf, you can invite me for everything else.¡±This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Chapter 1060 Chapter 1060 Chapter 1060 ¡°Sure,¡± Remy said. Elisa asked, ¡°Mr. Johnson, your family lives in a manor too, right?¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Remy hummed and responded, ¡°Ms. Stone, call me Remy. We¡¯ll be neighbors soon, so there¡¯s no need for us to act like strangers. A near neighbor is better than a distant rtive.¡± ¡°Alright, but you shouldn¡¯t call me Ms. Stone either. In your words, there¡¯s no need for neighbors to act like strangers. You can call me Elisa.¡± Remy smiled and continued. ¡°Our family¡¯s old house is also a manor, simr to that of Mr. York¡¯s family. Ours is called FC Manor.¡± He looked at the scenery in front of them and said to Elisa, ¡°It looks like Old Mrs. York and my grandma have simr tastes and preferences They¡¯re from the same era and have the same aesthetic standard FC Manor and Wildridge Manor are quite simr ¡± If he had to point out a difference between the two manors, it would be that FC Manor was slightly bigger. Elisa also looked at her surroundings 1 used to dream of living here. It¡¯s quiet and far from the hustle and bustle of the city. The environment is excellent, and the ce is spacious, so I won¡¯t be bored even if I stay at home for a month.¡± The main thing was that this was Zachary¡¯s home She used to love Zachary deeply and wanted to be the missus of Wildridge Manor. Remy said gently. ¡°If an opportunity arises in the future, you can visit FC Manor and stay for a few days.¡± Elisa gathered her drifting thoughts and replied to him, ¡°Annenburg has a lot of tourist attractions, so i often travel there. Didn¡¯t your family build a resort? I like to stay there whenever I visit¡± It was just that she had not met Remy back then ¡°Let me know when you visit Annenburg again. I¡¯ll do my best as a host and cover all your expenses there I can also be your guide for free, take you to all the scenic spots, and bring you to try all the delicious food.¡± Elisa did not think much about it and responded, ¡°Sure thing. I¡¯ll ask Serenity and Jasmine along. They¡¯re serious foodies. If we bring them, we¡¯ll have a better appetite as well.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Remy agreed to everything Elisa said. This made Elisa feel that he had indeede from a big family as he had good self-control and was gentle. As for what her big brother said about Remy being ruthless in the business world, she was not concerned at all. She was not doing business with Remy, so why would she care if he was ruthless in that sense or not? A soft person would not be able to make it big in business. After all, the weak were food for the strong in that circle. Did her big brother not have a ruthless side as well? Elisa simply thought that she and Remy could get along and that they would be neighbors. It was important to have good rtionships with neighbors. The duo walked and chatted happily. Serenity watched them the whole time from behind and said softly to the man next to her, ¡°I see that they¡¯ve been shot by Cupid¡¯s arrow.¡± Zacharyughed and asked, ¡°Did you think that you¡¯re Cupid? Linking two people to be in love?¡± Serenity chuckled softly. ¡°1 want to be Cupid and link lovers so they can find a way to be together. I remember reading a story when I was a child. I don¡¯t remember the full story, but I do remember some of the content. ¡°In the story. Cupid was offended by the male protagonist, whose lust was rejected by the female protagonist. Cupid took cruel revenge by shooting the man with an arrow of love and passion, but the woman with an arrow of disgust for the man. In the end, the man was madly in love with a woman who despised him with every ounce of her being.¡± Chapter 1061 Chapter 1061 Chapter 1061 ¡°In the end, Cupid had toe down to Earth to clean up his apprentice¡¯s mess and bring together the man and woman who were fated to be a couple. The show felt so magical when I first watched it. I was young and didn¡¯t understand love, but the idea of bringing two people together by shooting them with arrows seemed really interesting.¡± Zachary asked, ¡°Was there a TV show like that? I don¡¯t remember seeing it. I rarely have time to watch TV He was the sessor of thepany and had to learn more than his peers since his childhood. He received all kinds of training and education, so of course he did not have time to watch TV. ¡°When my parents were still alive, I often watched TV shows with them. TVs back then were still in ck and white. ¡°After my parents passed away, my sister and I were on our own. We had to focus on studying and didn¡¯t have time to watch TV for several years. We only watched a few shows asionally after we started working and had time.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Zachary held her hand tightly. ¡°In the future, I¡¯ll apany you to watch any TV series you want.¡± Serenity leaned her head on his shoulder but quickly straightened up again. There were many people around, so it was not an appropriate time to be lovey-dovey As they strolled and chatted, the journey felt shorter, and they soon arrived at the barbecue site in the vi Sam finished arranging everything, so there were no more preparations needed to be done after they arrived at the site. The men wanted to show off, so they manned the grill while the women ate When the other young masters of the York family saw Zachary¡¯s table full of couples, they silently moved to another grill some distance away. They did not want to be too close to the couples since it was easy for them to feel envious Kevin ced a te of grilledmb skewers on the table and said to Callum, ¡°Are you envious?¡± ¡°Save the chit-chat. If you are, then do as Nana says. Our family also has hotels in Jensburg. Go on a business trip and see your future wife.¡± Kevin snatched the chicken wing from Callum¡¯s hand and said, ¡°If you want to eat, you can grill it yourself¡± He did not want Hayden! She was a tomboy! She looked even more handsome as a man than he did! More importantly, he inquired about Hayden privately and found out that her reputation in Jensburg was just as grand as Zachary¡¯s. Hayden was definitely a tough bone to crack Kevin felt that his bones would break first Callum wanted to eat the other grilled food, but Kevin took the te away and did not let him eat ¡°I said one sentence, but you¡¯re not letting me eat anymore. ¡°Don¡¯t be so petty, Kevin. You won¡¯t suffer by listening to Nana. In fact, you¡¯ll suffer more if you don¡¯t listen to her.¡± Kevin snapped, ¡°You¡¯re not listening to her either.¡± Callum was speechless and thought, ¡®Well, better you than me.¡± Chapter 1062 Chapter 1062 Chapter 1062 Serenity watched her brothers-inw bickering and felt envious. The brothers and uncles of the York family were harmonious, unlike the Hunt family where everyone was trying to plot against another. ¡°Elisa, what did you say you wanted to invest in?¡± Serenity remembered about the investment and asked Elisa about it while eating the barbecue seafood tter her man specially prepared for her. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Jasmine also pricked her ears to listen. She also felt some pressure now because of Josh. When she saw how her best friend was trying so hard to improve herself in order to shorten the gap between Zachary and her, Jasmine did not want to stand idly by anymore. ¡°All the industries are saturated now, so it¡¯s hard for us topete with others. When I apanied you back to your hometown yesterday, I saw the fields in your vige were basically deserted.¡± Serenity nodded. ¡°Many of them are abandoned. The young people leave the vige to work, so only the elderly and children are left at home. However, they can¡¯t do any work, so the fields end up that way¡± Her family¡¯s fields which she had seen from afar were also left aside. Well, her rtives in the vige were considered rich, so they could live a better life than everyone else without needing to farm. ¡°I was thinking, how about we arrange for a person to rent all the barren fields there, and then nt grass and vegetables? Of course, we don¡¯t have to manage it ourselves. We¡¯ll hire someone to take care of it instead. I¡¯m afraid your rtives will sabotage the fields if we show up ¡°If we seed in nting them, we won¡¯t have to worry about the market. Vi areas and urban greening need grass, which is what we¡¯ll be nting specifically. We can also nt vegetables and fruits. ¡°Stone Group and York Corporation have many hotels under their banner, and they need arge number of fruits and vegetables every day. Of course, our goal is to sell to other hotels. We¡¯re not trying to earn. money from our own families. ¡°School cafeterias,rge factory canteens, and the likes also need arge number of fruits and vegetables every day. Although thepetition in this field is also very fierce, I think we¡¯ll have a slight advantage over others. 1 saw a lot of deserted fields along the road you took to your hometown. I believe the vigers will be more than happy to rent the fields to us. Earning some ie from the rent is better than leaving them untouched.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°I¡¯m from the countryside, but I never thought of using the fields in the vige to make money. You¡¯re good at thinking outside the box, Elisa. There are too few people still farming in the vige, mainly because the fields are scattered, and each family only has one or two acres ofnd. They only harvest just enough to feed their own families, so they can¡¯t earn much money ¡± Serenity thought Elisa would open a store selling luxury goods, start a beauty salon, or something along those lines. She did not expect Elisa to aim at the barren fields in the countryside. Elisa continued, I¡¯ve made some calctions and think that this investment is profitable. We won¡¯t go that far We¡¯ll just nt grass, fruits, and vegetables on the fields we contract in Wiltspoon¡¯s countryside. so we¡¯ll save a little on transportation costs. We won¡¯t profit much if we ship between borders due to therger costs 1 don¡¯t think it¡¯s necessary to worry about marketing as long as our quality is good. If you think the prospects are good, we can start working. I¡¯ll draft a n and calcte the cost of the various aspects we need to invest in. I¡¯ll ask Clive¡¯s secretary to handle the issue of renting the fields since no one in your hometown knows him.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Go to the vige chief. He will consult the opinions of the vigers and then sign the contract.¡± Elisa nodded. Liberty interjected, ¡°My breakfast diner also needs fruits and vegetables every day. If you guys seed, I¡¯ll sign a long-term partnership with you.¡± She had just started her own business, but she was ambitious and hoped to eventually open arge restaurant. When her business grew, her supply of ingredients would increase as well. Elisa smiled. ¡°Thank you for your support, Liberty, but I prefer to earn other people¡¯s money. Earning money from one¡¯s own family is only something a person would do when they¡¯re at the end of their rope.¡± If a person did business with their own family, they would be called heartless if the prices were high. If the prices were low, they would end up losing money instead. Either way, it was a lose-lose situation. Chapter 1063 Chapter 1063 Chapter 1063 Liberty thought about it and said, ¡°You¡¯re right. Elisa, your way of thinking is much better than ours. You should learn more from Elisa, Seren.¡± The Hunt sisters were motivated and ambitious, but they might not be as good as Elisa when it came to investing and making money. After all, Elisa came from a family who ran their own business, so she at least had some experience. Elisa blushed andughed, 1 only thought of renting the fields to nt fruits and vegetables after I saw so many fields deserted on the way back to your hometown. 1 talked to Clive, and he said that it¡¯s feasible. He said that no matter what project we invest in, project that makes us money is a good project. He suggested we give it a try.¡± any Elisa added confidently. ¡°Let¡¯s just give it a go. It¡¯ll be good if we can profit, but if we fail, it¡¯ll be a learning experience. In any case, I¡¯m not short of money. ¡°Seren, mention it to Zacharyter at night. If he thinks it¡¯s worth a try, then we¡¯ll go for it. He¡¯s very discerning when ites to investing in projects.¡± Ever since Zachary took over York Corporation, every project he invested in was a hit and turned into a profit Elisa often heard Clive talk about Zachary¡¯s achievements at home. Clive only stopped mentioning Zachary after she fell in love with him. ¡°Sure Serenity agreed easily. In fact, the men had sharp ears. They heard the women discussing investing in fields in the vige and nting grass as well as fruits and vegetables. Although they did not speak, all of them felt that Elisa had good insight. In Elisa¡¯s words, all industries were saturated now, so it was difficult for neers to make a living. Thepetition in the field they were investing in was also fierce, but Elisa and Serenity had an advantage with their status. They would have an easier time than others if they went around to discuss business partnerships with their peers. If that did not work, they could supply their families¡¯ hotels. That was why the men felt that Elisa¡¯s idea was worth a try. Zachary did not n to help. Serenity was an independent woman, so she would not want him to help unless she asked for it. She would not feel a sense of aplishment if he did. Since she wanted to work by herself, he would support her. It would be good if she could earn money. If she failed, she could just stay at home as the missus of the York family and spend his money. Remy recalled that the branchpany he managed had a cafeteria. Although it was just a branch company, there were still thousands of employees working there, so the cafeteria needed arge number of fruits and vegetables every day. He wondered if Elisa would notice hispany ande to talk to him about a business partnership Of course, he did not personally manage the cafeteria. However, if Elisa came to him, he would spare some time to manage the cafeteria himself. Thedies chatted about investment while eating the barbecue, and soon, everyone was stuffed. Elisa hugged Sonny and rubbed his round tummy,ughing, ¡°We got so carried away talking that we didn¡¯t pay attention to this little guy. Look, his tummy is so round now. Let¡¯s take a break and go on a stroll to help with digestion.¡± Serenity reached out and touched her nephew¡¯s stomach. She asked with a smile, ¡°Do you feel ufortable, Sonny?¡± Sonny shook his head. ¡°Nope. I stopped eating when I got full. I gave the food I couldn¡¯t finish to Dunc.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Everyone looked at Duncan. Duncan said matter-of-factly, I didn¡¯t want to waste food we spent so much effort to grill.¡± In fact, the food that Sonny gave him was food that he had not touched yet. The little boy was very smart He was afraid that Duncan would be disgusted, so he did not give Duncan the food that he ate halfway Duncan felt that Sonny had a bright future ahead of him. He was just three years old, but he was so clever and sensible. Furthermore, he was adorable. How he wished that Sonny was his son. Chapter 1064 Chapter 1064 Chapter 1064 Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I gave Dunc all the food I haven¡¯t touched,¡± the little boy exined. Thus, the others did not find it strange. ¡°Let¡¯s take a break. We¡¯ll have some free time to ourselves.¡± Zachary spoke to the group. He wanted to bring his beloved wife on a stroll around their home alone. The group smiled in understanding. After a short rest, Zachary took Serenity away from the barbecue site. Til take you to the garden to see the flowers. The flowers are in bloom now¡± Serenity did not refuse. She was not familiar with the ce and did not know where the scenery was good, so she followed wherever he brought her to The spring breeze caressed her face, and Serenity could not help but close her eyes and enjoy the wind The air here is better than in the city.¡± Zachary smiled ¡°Of course it is. It¡¯s very quiet here too. It¡¯s too bad Liberty¡¯s store is opening tomorrow, or we could stay here for a few more days so you can get more familiar with your new home.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be living in my home for the rest of my life. There¡¯s more than enough time for me to familiarize myself with this ce, so there¡¯s no rush. The most important thing now is to help my sister stabilize her business first.¡± Zachary was very happy with what she said. Yes, this was her home. It was their home. They would live here for the rest of their lives. ¡°But the manor is huge. I would get lost if I had to wander by myself without you leading me.¡± ¡°It¡¯s easy to get lost in an unfamiliar environment. Theyout of the manor is built somewhat like a maze. If a neer doesn¡¯t have someone to lead them, they might wander around lost for three days. Serenity was stunned. ¡°Seriously? Thank goodness you¡¯re around to lead me. I¡¯d be embarrassed if I got lost here for three days.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°How would I let you walk alone? Of course I¡¯ll show you around and let you familiarize yourself with the ce. It¡¯s the first time I¡¯ve taken a woman on a stroll around my family¡¯s vi.¡± ¡°What an honor.¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s my honor to serve you.¡± The couple looked at each other and grinned. Zachary could not help but stop and wrap his arms around his beloved wife. He said huskily, ¡°Honey, let me charge you a service fee, okay? I got excited when I saw how spirited you looked when you were talking to Elisa about investment.¡± Serenity first looked around to make sure no one was around, then she boldly kissed him. After the lingering kiss, Zacharyced his hands with hers again and walked forward with their fingers interlocked. He was in a good mood, so the scenery on the sides of the path looked particrly beautiful. After walking for ten minutes, they entered the garden. Serenity felt like she fell into a sea of flowers. She took her time in the garden and took many pictures. Finally, she entered the greenhouse. As the gardener introduced the nts, Serenity suddenly realized that not only were the many flowers she kept on her balcony the same variety as the ones in the greenhouse, even the flower pots were identical. The gardener who was in charge of managing the flora in the manor bought the flower pots wholesale, resulting in many of them sharing the same design. Chapter 1065 Chapter 1065 Chapter 1065 ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Zachary saw Serenity staring at the flower pots and said warmly, ¡°If you like them, let¡¯s take a few pots back and keep them on the balcony.¡± ¡°Zachary.¡± Serenity turned to him and asked, ¡°Back then, I asked you to buy flowers from the florist. Did you buy them at the flower shop or have they been sent over from here?¡± There was no need to hide the truth anymore, so Zachary admitted honestly, ¡°I called Sam and asked him to arrange for someone to send some potted flowers over. I know you likerge flowers with complicated petals, so I specifically asked them to pick those flowers and send them over.¡± ¡°No wonder I always felt that the flowers you bought were more beautiful than the ones I bought. It¡¯s because they¡¯re a variety carefully cultivated by your gardener.¡± The flowers here were much better than the ones found in flower shops. ¡°Are you angry, honey?¡± ¡°What¡¯s there to be angry about? The time to be angry has already passed.¡± Zachary stood in front of the gardener and wrapped an arm around Serenity¡¯s shoulder, turning her to walk out of the greenhouse. He deliberately lowered his voice, probably because he did not want the gardener to hear his words. ¡°I was terrified back then, I was so afraid that I¡¯d lose you.¡± Serenity pinched his face and let him go. ¡°The house appliances I told you to buy were probably also sent by Sam, weren¡¯t they?¡± ¡°Yes, Sam sent the appliances over when you weren¡¯t at home.¡± Serenityughed wryly. ¡°It must have been really hard on you when you were lying to me.¡± ¡°I promise I won¡¯t lie to you again in the future. I really had a tough time. I had to rack my brains to keep covering my tracks, but the lies only snowballed.¡± ¡°I thought you lied so much that it became your nature.¡± Zachary let out a low chuckle. In the end, his lies really became natural N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Wildridge Manor was enormous. Due to time constraints, the eldest missus of the York family, could not finish strolling around the manor on her first visit. Liberty¡¯s breakfast diner would be opening tomorrow, so thedy herself declined the York family¡¯s offer for her to stay Liberty once again got into Duncan¡¯s car and left the manor to return to the city. Serenity and Zachary stayed at the manor for the night. Like Liberty, Elisa and the others left after having dinner. Duncan chauffeured Liberty and her son back to the city and straight to Liberty¡¯s rented ce. Sonny spent the afternoon ying at the children¡¯s yground in the manor, so he was tired. He fell asleep nestled in his mother¡¯s arms as soon as they got into the car. ¡°Do you want me to walk you upstairs? Duncan turned his head around to ask. When he saw that Sonny was asleep, he hurriedly got out of the car to help open Liberty¡¯s door He was just about to take Sonny from her arms ¡°No, it¡¯s quitete You should go back and rest early, Mr. Lewis ¡± Liberty did not give her son to Duncan to carry She got out of the car with Sonny in her arms and politely declined Duncan¡¯s offer to take her upstairs. Duncan did not force it and said, ¡°All right. You rest early too.¡± After thanking him. Liberty carried her son, walked into the building, and went upstairs under Duncan¡¯s watchful eyes Duncan stood there for a while before getting into his car and driving away He wanted to go back to his vi, but when he was halfway there, he received a call from his mother asking him toe home ¡°Mom, it¡¯ll be inconvenient for me to go to work every day if I go home.¡± He knew what his mother was nning Chapter 1066 Chapter 1066 Chapter 1066 His mother wanted him toe home so he and Lily had a chance to cultivate a rtionship. Duncan did not have a bad impression of Lily, but he did not like her either. ¡°What¡¯s inconvenient about that? You drive to work anyway, and no one will say anything even if you¡¯re late since you¡¯re the boss. There¡¯s a guest at home now, so you have to stay home for a few days.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m tired after being out and about today. I¡¯m driving now so it¡¯s not convenient for me to talk to you. I¡¯ll hang up now.¡± Duncan did not directly reject his mother¡¯s request and found an excuse to hang up the phone. After the call ended, Mrs. Lewis said helplessly to her husband, ¡°I¡¯m afraid your youngest son will be single for the rest of his life. Lily is a great girl who doesn¡¯t mind his scarred face, but he¡¯s not even willing to spend some time with her.¡± Mr. Lewis said faintly. ¡°You¡¯re too hasty and obvious in your motive. You¡¯ve arranged several blind dates for Duncan, and he has developed an aversion to blind dates. He doesn¡¯t like to be controlled by us. ¡°Just leave him be. If he¡¯s destined to remain single, it¡¯s useless even if you arrange hundreds of blind dates for him. If he¡¯s destined to meet someone, then he¡¯ll meet that person and fall in love without you meddling ¡°Whatever will be, will be ¡± Mrs. Lewis twisted her husband¡¯s arm in anger and scolded him, ¡°It¡¯s because of a father like you that your son is still a bachelor at the age of thirty-six!¡± Mr. Lewis did not get angry at being scolded ¡°The younger generation will do all right on their own. What¡¯s the point of agonizing over them? I¡¯m not worried about them. They all have their own destiny. Let nature take its course.¡± After saying that, he pulled up the quilt to cover his head lest his wife pinched him again. The night passed without a word. The next day was the opening day of All You Can Eat. Serenity and Mrs. Lane arrived at the store early in the morning, where Liberty had already started working ¡°Liberty, is the ribbon for the ribbon-cutting ceremony ready?¡± Having a ribbon-cutting ceremony was an important ritual before opening a new store. Yes, Serenity admitted that they were slightly superstitious. There was also a ribbon-cutting ceremony when she first opened the bookstore with Jasmine. ¡°Everything is ready.¡± Liberty had gotten up at three in the morning to work. She was in good spirits now. People would be in high spirits being involved in happy events. This was her first time opening a store. Serenity helped her sister set up the ribbon for the opening ceremonyter. Zachary, who apanied her, could not help because he had no experience in such a thing. He could only sit aside and help his sister-inw take care of Sonny. Sonny was still asleep, but Liberty did not dare leave him alone in the rented apartment. She carried her son on her back and came over at three o¡¯clock. When the ribbon-cutting ceremony was done, they popped the confetti. ¡°I can¡¯t believe I¡¯mte.¡± Duncan sent several flower stands over. When he saw the confetti on the ground, he helped Liberty arrange the flower stands and said with a smile, 1 set an rm, but I was stillte.¡± ¡°Liberty came over in the wee hours to start preparing, but you only arrived after dawn. Of course you¡¯re toote.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Zachary as a matter of factly handed over the still-asleep Sonny to Duncan. He had been holding Sonny for more than an hour, so it was time to let Duncan hold him. Duncan carried Sonny. ¡°He didn¡¯t wake up when they popped the confetti?¡± ¡°He¡¯s sleeping deeply after exhausting himself from too much fun yesterday.¡± Liberty weed Duncan into the store and wanted to carry her son, but Duncan said, ¡°Don¡¯t you need to cook breakfast for me? I¡¯m your first customer, right? Let me hold Sonny. I want to carry him. The only time I can carry him is when he¡¯s asleep.¡± Chapter 1067 Chapter 1067 Chapter 1067 Libertyughed. ¡°Since you¡¯re my first customer, your meal will be on the house. What would you like to eat, Mr. Lewis?¡± Duncan said, ¡°No, I¡¯ll pay. It¡¯s your opening day, so you have to earn money. You need to collect money no matter whoes to eat.¡± Zachary echoed, ¡°Paying for breakfast is pocket change for Duncan. Don¡¯t even think of giving him a discount and only charge him the price as per your menu.¡± ¡°In that case, thank you for your support.¡± In his heart, Zachary thought, ¡®What¡¯s there to thank? In the future, Duncan might sink his teeth into you and never let you go.¡¯ Soon after Duncan entered, there was a stream of customersing into the store for breakfast. Enter title¡­ Liberty started getting busy. A new store opening was most likely to attract people toe in and try their food. Liberty¡¯s store had been remodeling for a period of time. The people working in nearby This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. buildings passing by every day were already long aware of All You Can Eat. They felt that the name of the store was simple and sounded down-to-earth. When they saw that it was open for business, they came in to try the new owner¡¯s skills. At the age of fifteen, Liberty started raising her younger sister. Her cooking skills were honed for decades. Those who came in to eat felt that the food of this diner was remarkably satisfying. After the morning rush hour, Liberty finally had time to catch her breath. Although it was tiring, she was absolutely happy. Of course, if her ex-husband did note in with his mother, Liberty¡¯s smile would have remained until nighttime. Hank came with a flower stand. When he saw that the only people in the store were Zachary, Serenity, and the middle-aged woman who often helped Liberty, he frowned. He proceeded toment something unpleasant, ¡°Why are there no customers?¡± Olivia looked at the flower stands at the entrance. They were from Zachary and Serenity, Jasmine, Elisa and her family, as well as from Duncan. Her expression soured when she saw Duncan¡¯s flower stands. He sent over several stands, but her son only brought one. Olivia immediatelypared her son to Duncan. When she looked up and saw that her son had entered the store, she quickly followed. She came in just in time to hear her son¡¯s unpleasant words and pped his arm. ¡°Hank, shut your mouth if you don¡¯t know what to say.¡± Then, she raised a bag containing a bottle of champagne she brought and handed it to Liberty with a smile. ¡°Congrattions on your opening day, Liberty. I hope business is booming for you.¡± Liberty took the congrattory card from the bag, thanked her, and returned the bag with the champagne to Olivia. ¡°Liberty, this is a little token from me. Just ept it.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve epted your thoughts.¡± Liberty insisted on not epting Olivia¡¯s champagne. Olivia had no choice but to take back the bag. Then, she greeted Serenity and Zachary with a smile. ¡°Serenity, I haven¡¯t seen you for a while but you¡¯re getting prettier by the day. Your temperament has also improved. I knew you were a blessed person.¡± Serenity gave a dryugh. She did not want to be bothered with Olivia. In the past, Olivia and Chelsea often muttered about her behind her back. ¡°Mr. York.¡± Olivia acted obsequiously toward Zachary, wanting to please him. Zachary¡¯s expression was deadpan as he remained silent. Olivia was so embarrassed that she did not dare say anything else. Serenity¡¯s husband was taciturn yet terrifying! Hank finally realized what he said was displeasing. He handed the flower stand to Liberty and said, ¡°I ordered these for you a few days in advance to congratte you on the opening of your new store.¡± Liberty nced at the long rows of flower stands at the entrance of the store and said faintly, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Brown, but it seems there¡¯s no room for your flower stand at the entrance of the store.¡± Chapter 1068 Chapter 1068 Chapter 1068 ¡°Why are there so many flower stands? Who sent them?¡± Hank was a little jealous. Liberty was just a woman he threw away, and she opened a small breakfast diner with the money she took from him. However, there were long rows of flower stands on the opening day. ¡°There¡¯s no space for my flowers? Then I¡¯ll get a re¡ª¡± Hank was just about to say that he would get a refund from the flower shop, but Olivia immediately interrupted him. She took the flower stand from his hand and red at him fiercely, then said to Liberty with a smile, ¡°There¡¯ll be space if you squeeze it in.¡± She took the flower stand outside and ced it at the spot of the stand that Duncan sent. If not for the fact that Serenity and Zachary, two people who she could not afford to Enter title¡­ mess with, were present, she would have smashed the flower stands sent by Duncan and thrown them away. Liberty did not want to have a fight with Hank and Olivia on the first day of business, so she turned a blind eye as long as they did not go too far. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m here to join in on the fun!¡± Elisa¡¯s voice had always arrived before she did. A missy like her never got up early in the morning so it was already considered early for her toe over now. ¡°What are you two doing here?¡± Her beautiful brows knitted when she saw Hank and Olivia when she entered. Without waiting for an answer, she warned them, ¡°Why are you two here? You¡¯re not wee here. Get out right now or I¡¯ll call someone to drag you out!¡± N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°M-Ms. Stone, we¡¯re here to support Liberty¡¯s store opening, not to cause trouble for her. We wouldn¡¯t dare mess with her.¡± Hank was quite afraid of Elisa. White-cor workers like them heard about Ms. Stone¡¯s unpleasant temper. ¡°You¡¯re not here to cause trouble? Then have you finished eating? If you have, then pay the bill and leave!¡± Although Elisa was a little capricious, she understood that it was not appropriate to pick a fight during the opening day of a store. Nevertheless, she was already being very polite to Hank and Olivia. ¡°We¡¯re done, we¡¯re done. We were just about to settle the bill and leave.¡± Hank pressed his mother down and did not allow her to speak. He took out his wallet, drew out a hundred-dor bill, and handed it to Liberty. ¡°Keep the change.¡± Liberty was just about to say something when Elisa swiftly snatched the hundred-dor bill. Hank slipped away quickly and ran out with his mother. ¡°At least they have themon sense to leave faster, otherwise I¡¯d have kicked them out.¡± Elisa looked at the shoes she was wearing and added as an afterthought, ¡°I¡¯m not wearing high heels since I drove here today. Otherwise, I guarantee they¡¯ll be in pain for three days if I kick them.¡± She handed the cash to Liberty and said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to be nice to people like them. If theye to you for breakfast, then charge them money. Theming here will affect your mood too, so it¡¯s not worth it unless you charge them more.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°They didn¡¯t eat anything.¡± Elisa paused. ¡°They didn¡¯t? Then think of this hundred bucks as pocket money for Sonny to buy snacks.¡± She shoved the money into Liberty¡¯s hand. Then, she picked a seat as if nothing happened and grinned. ¡°I¡¯d like¡­¡± She nced at the wall and picked one out at random. ¡°Eggs benedict please.¡± She did not know what to eat either. She was just ordering something for Liberty¡¯s business. Elisa camete, so she had the same assumption as Hank and thought the store was not doing well. ¡°Sure, just a moment. I can cook for you immediately since you came at this time. There were too many customers during the morning rush hour, and there were many orders for both dine-in and takeout. I was so busy I couldn¡¯t catch my breath.¡± Elisa blinked. It seemed that she was mistaken. Well, with the Hunt sisters¡¯ cooking skills, there was no way a restaurant they ran would have bad business. ¡°Hank, Hank¡ª¡± Jessica suddenly rushed in like a madwoman. The next moment, bodyguards from the York family as well as those hired by Duncan to patrol the streets swooped in. Chapter 1069 Chapter 1069 Chapter 1069 Serenity knew the Brown family too well. She was worried that the Browns and Hunts woulde over and cause havoc during the opening of her sister¡¯s new store. Thest thing anyone wanted on their store¡¯s opening day was trouble. Serenity asked her husband for help, requesting him to arrange for people to keep watch nearby so they could help deal with any problems as soon as possible. Serenity, who was independent and reluctant to rely on her husband, took the initiative to ask Zachary for help. Zachary was overjoyed and felt that his wife finally thought of him as family. He immediately agreed. In fact, he would have arranged for people to keep watch even without her request. Like Serenity, he was also wary of the Brown and Hunt families causing trouble. Enter title¡­ When Jessica saw all the bodyguards from the Yorks and Duncan, her madness stopped at once. Then, she looked into the store and saw that there were only Serenity, Zachary, and Elisa. Elisa had ignored her the first time she greeted her. Jessica would never forget that arrogant and condescending expression. She had a lingering fear of Elisa. ¡°I-Is Hank here?¡± Jessica stammered as she asked Liberty. ¡°You can see for yourself, Ms. Yates.¡± Liberty was making eggs benedict for her cousin. She only spared Jessica a nce before going back to going about her own business. Jessica did not dare be arrogant and asked softly, ¡°Hank and his mother went out early in the morning. His mom told me they wereing over to congratte you on opening your store. Where would they be if not here?¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Liberty said indifferently, ¡°He¡¯s your man. If you don¡¯t know where he is, how would I know?¡± Jessica choked. She looked at the surrounding bodyguards, those on guard and patrol, and smiled sheepishly. ¡°I just came here to look for Hank, not to cause trouble. Since my husband isn¡¯t here, I¡¯ll leave now.¡± Then, she quickly turned around and ran away. She swiftly returned to her car and drove off. In her heart, she was thankful that her brother was not willing to cause trouble at Liberty¡¯s shop because he disdained the money that Jessica gave him. Otherwise, who knew what the consequences would be? Jessica was grateful, and then she was jealous. Sure enough, people who had huge backers behind them were different. Liberty just opened a breakfast diner, but so many people sent her flower stands. The people who sent them must have done so because of Mr. York and Mrs. Stone. Furthermore, there were so many people keeping watch over the store and protecting her! ¡°She ran away quickly.¡± Serenity snorted coldly. Elisa said, ¡°What a wimp. I would¡¯ve spared her a nce if she showed the balls she had when stealing Liberty¡¯s husband.¡± The two women quietly nced at Zachary. With that mountain standing in the way, no one would dare stir up trouble. With a look from Zachary, the bodyguards went out. The security guards Duncan hired to patrol the streets also did not say anything and silently went out. After they left, Serenity said to her man, ¡°I¡¯m surprised there are guards patrolling the street.¡± ¡°Half of the stores on this street are owned by Mr. Lewis. He¡¯s worried tenants like us will face trouble, so he hired guards to patrol the streets and ensure our safety.¡± Chapter 1070 Chapter 1070 Chapter 1070 Liberty exined why there were security guards patrolling the street as she served the eggs benedict to Elisa. Serenity did not notice that the security guards were only patrolling half of the street including Liberty¡¯s store. As for the other half of the street, the guards simply looked from afar and did not patrol there. However, the overall security of the street was still heightened with the presence of the guards. Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes twinkled. She felt that Duncan¡¯s action was because of her sister, but when she saw that Liberty did not seem to be interested at all, there was nothing else she could say. Who knew if Duncan did it for her sister or really for the safety of all his tenants? The store rented by her sister indeed belonged to Duncan. Enter title¡­ Duncan would pass by here every day to and from work. Since he was friends with Zachary, it was normal for him to look out for Liberty. Duncan did not explicitly say that he was interested in Liberty, so Serenity could only watch silently from the sidelines. She could not do anything. Elisa tentatively tasted the eggs benedict and found that it was quite good. She finished the whole te. It was the opening day of Liberty¡¯s store. After breakfast hours were over, she prepared to close up and invited her family and friends to Wiltspoon Hotel for a meal. Liberty had more than a million dors from Hank, so she was not stingy and agreed easily. Liberty did not have friends after her marriage, so her guest list included the Stones, Soxes, and Yorks, as well as Josh and Duncan. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. The whole Stone family came, while Jasmine and Drake represented the Sox family. Their parents could not attend because of other matters, but they asked Jasmine to pass on a bottle of wine to Liberty. The members of the York family usually ate at their own hotel. Apart from Rowan, who was still in school, everyone who was in Wiltspoon attended. As for the older generation, only Grandma May, Liam, and Tania came. Grandma May¡¯s second and third sons could not make it, but they asked Tania to send Liberty congrattory gifts on their behalf. They showed a lot of respect to Liberty, who was Serenity¡¯s sister. Serenity was incredibly grateful. Later, in private, her sister nagged her again and told her to live well and be good to Zachary. Zachary had the backing of her sister. Whenever he had a conflict with Serenity, he would go back to her family to tell on her to her sister. Serenity did not know whether to laugh or cry at this. The meal Liberty treated everyone to was lively and full ofughter. Meanwhile, Jessica called Hank after leaving All You Can Eat and questioned where he went. He said he went out looking for work. Jessica only half-believed him, but after Hank coaxed her, she was in a much better mood and decided to go to the market to buy some groceries home to cook for her husband. When she came out of the mart, she was stopped by two tall men wearing ck masks and ck sunsses. Jessica saw theme out from a ck sedan. ¡°What do you want?¡± she asked cautiously while quietly taking a few steps back. ¡°Are you Ms. Jessica Yates?¡± ¡°Who are you?¡± They knew her name, but she did not know who they were. Jessica was wary. ¡°Ourdy wants to see you. Pleasee with us, Ms. Yates. Don¡¯t worry, we won¡¯t make things difficult for you.¡± Jessica frowned. ¡°Who¡¯s yourdy? I don¡¯t know her. I have to go home and make dinner for my husband since he¡¯sing back from work soon. I don¡¯t have time for you.¡± Then, she tried to walk around them. ¡°You and your husband both lost your jobs. What work are you talking about? Ms. Yates, are you willing to watch your husband get closer to his ex-wife each day until they remarry?¡± Jessica froze. ¡°Who the hell are you guys?¡± How did they know so much about her personal life? Chapter 1071 Chapter 1071 Chapter 1071 ¡°Ourdy is someone who can¡¯t stand to see the Hunt sisters doing whatever they want.¡± Jessica blinked. It was someone that the Hunt sisters had offended? What did that person want her for? She did not have the ability to suppress and retaliate against the Hunt sisters. ¡°You¡¯ll know once youe with us, Ms. Yates.¡± Jessica said, ¡°I don¡¯t even know who you are. Who knows what you¡¯ll do to me if I follow you? You¡¯re still wearing masks, so I can¡¯t see what you look like. However, I¡¯ll go with you if you take off your masks and let me take a photo to send to my husband. ¡°That way, you guys won¡¯t get away with it if anything happens to me.¡± Enter title¡­ ¡°Our apologies, Ms. Yates, but we can¡¯t take off our masks. If you don¡¯te with us, ourdy wille over to invite you personally. You won¡¯t like it if that happens. Ourdy has a bad temper.¡± ¡°Save your breath and just knock her out,¡± the other man said impatiently. When Jessica heard this, she immediately turned around and tried to run. However, just after taking two steps, she felt pain in the back of her neck and lost consciousness. She did not even have the opportunity to cry for help. The man who knocked Jessica out tossed her into the ck sedan, got into the car with hispanion, and drove off. Their car had no license te. However, after driving some distance away, they stopped at the side of the road, reattached the license te they removed, and continued driving. Jessica was knocked unconscious but soon woke up. She immediately pounded the car door and demanded to be let out. The man in the passenger seat turned his head to warn her, ¡°You¡¯d better behave, Ms. Yates. You¡¯ll die a miserable death if you make us angry.¡± ¡°W-What do you want with me?¡± she asked in a trembling voice. Her trembling hands reached for her phone. Fortunately, it was still with her. ¡°Don¡¯t think about calling the police or asking anyone for help. We can end your life at any time. Like I said, ourdy just wants to see you. If you¡¯re obedient and follow us to see her, I assure you that you¡¯ll return to the Brown residence in one piece. ¡°Otherwise, we can kill off your whole family, both the Brown and the Yates families!¡± That threat frightened Jessica, and she did not dare call the police or Hank. She said with a pale face, ¡°I-I¡¯ll go with you.¡± When the man saw that she was afraid, he turned his head bad with satisfaction and said, ¡°You just had to learn it the hard way.¡± Jessica was silent. The two men took her to an unfinished building on the outskirts, where weeds were overgrown, and rubbish littered the ground. All kinds of stench were mixed together, making her want to vomit. Jessica really threw up.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1072 Chapter 1072 Chapter 1072 One of the men waited for her to finish throwing up and handed her a mask. Jessica hurriedly put on the mask, but she could still smell the stench through it. She quickly used her hand to cover her mouth and nose, then followed the two men into the iplete building. It was only after entering the building and away from the garbage dumps did she lower her hand from her mouth and nose. She looked around to survey the surrounding environment. There was no one living nearby. No one would find out even if she met with misfortune here and her body dposed. That thought caused another shudder to run down her spine. She did not know who these men were. Since it was the Hunt sisters who offended them, they should find the Hunt sisters instead. Why did theye to her? Enter title¡­ She was also enemies with the Hunt sisters. ¡°Don¡¯t be afraid, Ms. Yates. I told them to bring you here because I wanted to talk to you about a deal. Let¡¯s work together to get back at Mrs. York.¡± An unfamiliar woman¡¯s voice sounded from a room on the first floor, but her figure could This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. not be seen. Jessica did not dare walk into the room because the two men who brought her here were still staring at her. She was slightly relieved upon hearing those words. It seemed like the other woman was targeting Serenity. ¡°How should I address you, miss? What kind of deal are you talking about? I¡¯m just a housewife who doesn¡¯t have a job. My maiden family and my husband¡¯s family don¡¯t have social status, so I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t help you.¡± The woman chuckled. ¡°There¡¯s no need to be modest, Ms. Yates. I did my homework before deciding to work with you. You have a problem with Mrs. York too, right? It so happens that I also have a grudge against her. Since we both have amon enemy, why not work together?¡± Jessica calmed her mind and asked, ¡°What do you want me to do? Serenity is the eldest missus of the York family now. Her man isn¡¯t someone easy to mess with. My legs grow weak at the sight of him, and I don¡¯t even dare talk to him. Asking me to do something to Serenity is the same as asking me to die.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not telling you to go after Serenity directly. You can start with Sonny.¡± ¡°Sonny?¡± Jessica suddenly thought of Hank and Liberty¡¯s son. Her heart trembled as she asked, ¡°You¡­ want me to kill Sonny?¡± After Hank and Liberty divorced, the Brown family¡¯s attention to Sonny continued to grow. Olivia repeatedly called Sonny the only one who could continue the Brown family line, saying that he was precious to the family. In fact, she was just mocking Jessica for not getting pregnant despite being with Hank for so long. Jessica hated it and was thankful that she helped Liberty by persuading Hank to give up custody of Sonny. Otherwise, she would die of anger if she saw the Brown family spoiling Sonny all day. However, no matter how upset Jessica was at how well the Brown family treated Sonny, she never thought about harming the child before. ¡°I didn¡¯t tell you to kill him. Listen and I¡¯ll tell you my n. Don¡¯t you inws want to take Sonny back from Liberty? What you have to do is convince your husband and mother-iw to take Sonny back to your family, 1 ¡°Then, you and Hank can take Sonny out to a crowded ce like a zoo or an amusement park. It¡¯s easy for children to get lost there. I¡¯ll arrange for someone to take Sonny away. That way, it¡¯ll just seem like you lost him by ident. No one will suspect that you deliberately harmed him.¡± ¡°You want to kidnap Sonny? If you want to get back at Serenity, then go after her. Why would you kidnap Sonny? He¡¯s an innocent child who doesn¡¯t know anything. If your men are rough and end up killing him¡­¡± ¡°Wouldn¡¯t that be better? Without Sonny, the son you give birth to in the future will be the only one carrying on the Brown family line, and all the assets of the Brown family will belong to your son. Although you don¡¯t have many assets now, as long as you agree to cooperate with me, I¡¯ll arrange for your husband to join argepany outside the city as a manager. He¡¯ll have an annual sry of more than a million. ¡°As long as your husband does a good job for a decade or two, your family will have a fortune left for your son to inherit. There¡¯ll be no need to share the inheritance with Sonny. How great is that?¡± Jessica was pale. Who was the woman in that room and how could she treat human life so flippantly? Was she from the underworld? Chapter 1073 Chapter 1073 Chapter 1073 ¡°Sonny¡­ Sonny is still a child. Besides, his custody was given to Liberty. Hank only needs to pay three thousand a month for child support, which will end when Sonny turns eighteen. Hank won¡¯t need to pay if Sonny wants to buy a house or car in the future. He has no way of fighting for the family assets.¡± ¡°People¡¯s hearts change. The only way you¡¯ll be sure that he won¡¯tpete with your son for the family fortune is if he¡¯s dead.¡± ¡°But I don¡¯t have a son¡­ I don¡¯t even have a daughter.¡± ¡°Can¡¯t you give birth to one?¡± Jessica choked. The other partyughed. ¡°It seems that you¡¯re just slightly morally reprehensible, but you still have humanity in you. I just told you about my n. I didn¡¯t say anything about killing Sonny. Enter title¡­ ¡°I want to use Sonny to lure Serenity over. She has a good rtionship with her nephew, so I believe she¡¯ll be willing toe and see me alone.¡± What she wanted was for Serenity to meet her alone. Jessica sighed in relief. She only had the ability to steal another woman¡¯s husband, not the ruthlessness to kill someone¡¯s son. ¡°Can you guarantee that you won¡¯t touch a hair on Sonny¡¯s head after you take him away?¡± ¡°Sure, under the condition that he doesn¡¯t cry or struggle. After all, he¡¯s just bait. The person I want to take revenge on is Serenity.¡± Jessica thought in her heart, ¡®How did Serenity offend such a ruthless woman? ¡®Does this woman also adore Zachary? Maybe she wants to get revenge and kill Serenity because of jealousy after finding out that they¡¯re married? Does she want to rece Serenity?¡¯ ¡°How about it? Are you willing to cooperate with me, Ms. Yates?¡± Jessica asked carefully, ¡°Can I refuse?¡± ¡°You can, but you¡¯ll have to bear the consequences¡­ Ms. Yates, do you know what a woman¡¯s greatest fear is?¡± Jessica¡¯s already pale face turned ashen. ¡°If you cooperate with me, the only person suffering would be Serenity. ¡°By the way, I have people surveilling all the members of the Yates family. If you don¡¯t do what I ask after agreeing to work with me, I¡¯m afraid misfortune might befall your family. ¡°Don¡¯t think of this as merely an intimidation. I¡¯m a woman of my word.¡± Jessica paused. ¡°Can you give me some time to think about it?¡± ¡°No! ¡°Do you agree or not?¡± Jessica saw seven to eight burly men wearing ck masks and sunssesing out from other rooms. Her legs shook as she said in an unsteady voice, ¡°I-I¡¯ll do it.¡± ¡°I knew you were a smart woman, Ms. Yates. The Hunt sisters are also your enemies.¡± Jessica did not dare say anything. ¡­ ¡°Achoo!¡± Serenity sneezed. The man beside her immediately asked with concern, ¡°Did you catch a cold?¡± ¡°No, I¡¯m fine. I just sneezed because my nose felt itchy. No need to fuss about it.¡± Zachary reached over to embrace her, letting her lean in his arms. He said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t go back to the store after lunch break. Rest for the day.¡± After Liberty treated everyone to a meal, those who had to work went back to work. Liberty took Duncan¡¯s car and went back to the rental ce with her son to rest. She was running a breakfast diner, so it was fine for her to close in the afternoon. Serenity leaned on Zachary¡¯s firm chest. She felt a sense of security as he held her, and all the nerves in her body rxed. She yawned and closed her eyes, muttering, ¡°I still have to go back to the bookstore in the afternoon to continue discussing the investment. ¡°There¡¯s also another banquet tomorrow night. This is the consequence of my asking Aunt Audrey for help. I have no choice but to go through with it.¡± Serenity felt that she was getting busier after bing the missus of the York familyThis is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Chapter 1074 Chapter 1074 Chapter 1074 N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. However, being busy for a period of time in exchange for peace of mind for the rest of her life was worth it. ¡°It¡¯s been hard on you, Seren.¡± Zachary kissed her forehead, distressed at how much she was going through because of him. ¡°I asked for it. If I learn well, it¡¯ll serve me for the rest of my life.¡± Serenity yawned again. She got up early in the morning, so she was sleepy now. ¡°You have to go back to the office in the afternoon too. Your time is much more valuable than ours.¡± Enter title¡­ He lost more by sacrificing half his day for her sister¡¯s sake. How would he be willing to make such a sacrifice if he did not love her deeply? Serenity looked at Zachary and reached out to touch his handsome face. Her eyes were filled with emotion. ¡°Babe, how did I manage to marry you? Don¡¯t worry, since you¡¯ve entrusted me with your life, I¡¯ll never let you down. I¡¯ll treat you well for the rest of your life. ¡°My sister is always nagging me to treat you better. It¡¯s as if she¡¯s afraid that I¡¯ll abuse you. Sometimes, even I feel jealous. It¡¯s like my sister treats you better than me.¡± Zachary held her hand touching his face and said seriously, ¡°My dash cam recorded everything you said. If you go back on your word and treat me badly in the future, I¡¯ll take the recording and tattle to Liberty about you not keeping your word.¡± Serenity was speechless. If Zachary went to her sister to tell on her, her sister would definitely discipline her. She quickly assured him, ¡°I won¡¯t let you down. Zachary, you won¡¯t snitch on me, right?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t like to snitch, but if I suffer a grievance, I need someone to do me justice. I think Liberty can fulfill that role.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡®Zachary, so these are your true colors!¡¯ She could not imagine the scene of Zachary and her having a little spat, then Zachary going to Liberty to cry about it. ¡°Honey, will you let me suffer grievances?¡± ¡°No, absolutely not. I don¡¯t care if anyone else does as long as that person isn¡¯t my husband. I love my Mr. York the most. Zachary, my love for you is like the Nile River. Its waters flow endlessly.¡± ¡°Pfft¡ª¡± The driver, as well as Jim sitting in the passenger seat, could not help butugh. The missus¡¯s will to live was quite strong. Only then did Serenity remember that they were sitting in Zachary¡¯s Rolls Royce with the driver and Super Jim in the car with them. Super Jim was the nickname that Serenity gave him. He could do everything, so she called him so. ¡°I¡¯m sleepy, Zachary. I¡¯ll take a nap.¡± Serenity simply threw herself into her husband¡¯s arms and pretended to sleep. In any case, she did not feel embarrassed. The embarrassed one was someone else. Zachary held her with a smile in his eyes. ¡°Sleep. I¡¯ll carry you upstairs when we reach home and wake you up to go back to the store at three in the afternoon.¡± Serenity hummed. She really was sleepy. She soon fell asleep in Zachary¡¯s arms. Zachary was sleepy too. Serenity got up early, since they slept in the same bed, how could he continue sleeping when she was already awake? He embraced his wife, leaned back in the car seat, and also closed his eyes. He thought of taking a short nap till they got home. Thus, he surrendered himself to the sandman. The sandman easily put them to sleep. Chapter 1075 Chapter 1075 Chapter 1075 Serenity returned to the bookstore at 2:50 pm. Zachary personally sent her to the store. ¡°I have a social function tonight,¡± Zachary said somberly when Serenity got out of the car. Serenity looked at him and instinctively asked, ¡°What time will you leave the office? Don¡¯t drink too much, and definitely don¡¯t drink on an empty stomach. It¡¯ll hurt your tummy.¡± ¡°I took medicine for three days. My stomach will be fine.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Even if your stomach is fine, you still have to take care of it. I¡¯ll send you some food before you leave work. Eat a little before going, but still, don¡¯t drink too much. It¡¯s best if you can forgo drinking altogether.¡± ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll listen to you. I¡¯ll wait for you to send food to me before leaving.¡± Enter title¡­ Zachary¡¯s dark eyes burned as he looked at Serenity. Serenity instantly understood what he wanted and turned back to kiss his face. Then, she pinched his cheek. Just as Zachary was about to strike, she slipped out of the car swiftly so he could not catch her. Zachary wanted to say something to her, but she did not hear. Anyway, she agreed to let him do whatever he wanted after two more days. Serenity smiled and went into the bookstore. Elisa and Jasmine were both in the store. One was holding a novel and reading it, and the other was fiddling with Serenity¡¯s half-weaved craft. They looked at her at the same time when they saw here in with a smile. Elisa spoke first. ¡°Jasmine, have you noticed that Seren is getting prettier and prettier? Her smile is getting sweeter as well. It¡¯s as bright as the morning sun.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Jasmine closed the novel she had not finished reading. Elisa and Serenity both did not understand why she loved reading novels so much. ¡°With love as nourishment, she¡¯s naturally bing more beautiful.¡± Serenityughed and retorted, ¡°That¡¯s the pot calling the kettle ck.¡± Josh and Jasmine had eventually be a couple as they got along in their daily life. They were an incredibly rxed and sweet couple since they did not have to go through the twists and turns that Serenity and Zachary had. Josh was well-tempered, and Jasmine was not pretentious, so they got along well. Josh¡¯s EQ was also much higher than his two friends, and he was someone romantic. Jasmine could not resist his romancing and raised her hands in surrender very quickly. The twodies looked at Elisa in unison. Elisa was the only one among them who was still single. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me. I¡¯m not in the mood to date now. I want to learn to be a strong woman like my mom when she was young.¡± Elisa grinned and touched her face, saying confidently, ¡°I¡¯m beautiful even without the nourishment of love.¡± ¡°That¡¯s true. You¡¯re always beautiful. You were born beautiful. I love how forthright you are.¡± Serenity walked to the cashier¡¯s desk. Elisa gave up her seat and asked, ¡°Is your online store still open?¡± ¡°Of course. I¡¯m a person who can never have too much money. As long as there¡¯s money to be made and I can cope with the workload, I¡¯ll continue the online store.¡± She sat down and continued to work on her craft while saying, ¡°Elisa, have you finished the n? Tell us about it. We¡¯re both rookies, so we need you to take the lead.¡± ¡°Seren, you can hire people to help you with handicrafts. That way, you can continue the operation of your online shop while freeing up time to do other things. You¡¯ll earn less money, but you¡¯ll earn money all the same,¡± Elisa suggested. Serenity said, ¡°I recently contacted several ssmates who were in the same major as I was. They¡¯re mostly housewives now and have no ie. They also tried opening an online store but failed to keep it running. They said they¡¯ll give me an answer tomorrow.¡± She had more important things to do, so she could not focus entirely on the online store as she did before. Her ssmates who learned to weave crafts together with her did not seed in starting an online business. However, it was not because theycked skill. She was simply luckier than them and had Zachary, his brothers, as well as Elisa to rmend her crafts to others. Chapter 1076 Chapter 1076 Chapter 1076 Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity thought about Zachary and herself. It seemed like she rarely coaxed him. When she saw how easily Josh became ted when Jasmine coaxed him, she thought, ¡®I¡¯ll buy Zachary a gift when I bring dinner to himter. I¡¯m sure it¡¯ll make him happy.¡¯ ¡°Jasmine, what are we eating tonight?¡± Serenity asked. Jasmine said, ¡°Liberty treated us to lunch earlier, so I didn¡¯t buy any groceries. What do you want to eat? I¡¯ll buy it now.¡± ¡°You have dinner ns, and I have to send dinner to my husband too. His stomach is unwell, but he has a dinner party. I¡¯m worried his stomach will hurt more if he drinks on an empty stomach. You guys chat. I¡¯ll buy some food ande back.¡± Jasmine and Elisa hummed. Enter title¡­ After Serenity left, Elisa said enviously, ¡°I envy Seren. It¡¯s not easy for Zachary and her to be an ordinary couple. Zachary is arrogant, but Seren can make him break his character for her.¡± ¡°When Mr. York came over in the past, he was like an ice sculpture. The students be timid whenever he helps us man the register or look after the store.¡± Elisaughed. ¡°That¡¯s normal. He¡¯s still the same now. He just puts on a different face in front of Seren. In the future, I need to find a man who¡¯s willing to make exceptions for me in the future. I¡¯ll hold onto his heart and not let him have a chance to slip away.¡± ¡°You¡¯re a great person, Elisa. I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll find a man who¡¯s willing to do that for you. Maybe that man is already beside you, and you just haven¡¯t noticed it yet. Be sure to open the door when lovees knocking.¡± Elisa said confidently, ¡°I also think I won¡¯t be worse off than Seren. I can also marry a man who loves me.¡± She gave up on Zachary, but it did not mean that she gave up happiness. Instead, she was given a new lease of life. She would be able to obtain happiness that belonged solely to her. She was just waiting for love to knock on her door. Serenity soon came back from buying groceries. When she returned, she went into the kitchen to start cooking, intending to send a meal made with love to her darling before rush hour ande back quickly to watch the store so that her best friend could go on her date without worry. When Zachary and her rtionship was just warming up, Jasmine often stayed alone in the store. Now that Zachary and her feelings were stable, it was time to let Jasmine go on a date with Josh. ¡°The fastest way to a man¡¯s heart is through his stomach,¡± Elisa teased Serenity as she leaned against the doorway of the small kitchen ¡°Zachary¡¯s picky stomach has been conquered by you.¡± Serenity smiled and nced at her. ¡°Then, you¡¯d better learn from me so that you can conquer a certain man¡¯s stomach in the future.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll pass. I¡¯m waiting for him to conquer my stomach instead.¡± ¡°Yep, that¡¯s the Elisa I know.¡± Elisa asked, ¡°Seren, when you two spend time together, are you also the one taking care of him? Are you the one who buys groceries and cooks meals?¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s mostly Zachary cooking at home. Nana said that Zachary isn¡¯t a good cook, so she told me to give him the chance to practice more. That way, I¡¯ll be well fed as his skills improve.¡± Elisaughed loudly. ¡°Old Mrs. York is really Zachary¡¯s nana. She¡¯s a very smart woman. She¡¯s like an overgrown child, but she¡¯s very respectable. She¡¯s much better than my grandma. When my grandma was alive, she constantly tormented my mom and nitpicked her, giving her all sorts of difficulties.¡± ¡°Everyone in the York family is great.¡± Elisa agreed with Serenity¡¯s statement Chapter 1077 Chapter 1077 Chapter 1077 This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. Serenity thought about Zachary and herself. It seemed like she rarely coaxed him. When she saw how easily Josh became ted when Jasmine coaxed him, she thought, ¡®I¡¯ll buy Zachary a gift when I bring dinner to himter. I¡¯m sure it¡¯ll make him happy.¡¯ ¡°Jasmine, what are we eating tonight?¡± Serenity asked. Jasmine said, ¡°Liberty treated us to lunch earlier, so I didn¡¯t buy any groceries. What do you want to eat? I¡¯ll buy it now.¡± ¡°You have dinner ns, and I have to send dinner to my husband too. His stomach is unwell, but he has a dinner party. I¡¯m worried his stomach will hurt more if he drinks on an empty stomach. You guys chat. I¡¯ll buy some food ande back.¡± Jasmine and Elisa hummed. Enter title¡­ After Serenity left, Elisa said enviously, ¡°I envy Seren. It¡¯s not easy for Zachary and her to be an ordinary couple. Zachary is arrogant, but Seren can make him break his character for her.¡± ¡°When Mr. York came over in the past, he was like an ice sculpture. The students be timid whenever he helps us man the register or look after the store.¡± Elisaughed. ¡°That¡¯s normal. He¡¯s still the same now. He just puts on a different face in front of Seren. In the future, I need to find a man who¡¯s willing to make exceptions for me in the future. I¡¯ll hold onto his heart and not let him have a chance to slip away.¡± ¡°You¡¯re a great person, Elisa. I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll find a man who¡¯s willing to do that for you. Maybe that man is already beside you, and you just haven¡¯t noticed it yet. Be sure to open the door when lovees knocking.¡± Elisa said confidently, ¡°I also think I won¡¯t be worse off than Seren. I can also marry a man who loves me.¡± She gave up on Zachary, but it did not mean that she gave up happiness. Instead, she was given a new lease of life. She would be able to obtain happiness that belonged solely to her. She was just waiting for love to knock on her door. Serenity soon came back from buying groceries. When she returned, she went into the kitchen to start cooking, intending to send a meal made with love to her darling before rush hour ande back quickly to watch the store so that her best friend could go on her date without worry. When Zachary and her rtionship was just warming up, Jasmine often stayed alone in the store. Now that Zachary and her feelings were stable, it was time to let Jasmine go on a date with Josh. ¡°The fastest way to a man¡¯s heart is through his stomach,¡± Elisa teased Serenity as she leaned against the doorway of the small kitchen ¡°Zachary¡¯s picky stomach has been conquered by you.¡± Serenity smiled and nced at her. ¡°Then, you¡¯d better learn from me so that you can conquer a certain man¡¯s stomach in the future.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll pass. I¡¯m waiting for him to conquer my stomach instead.¡± ¡°Yep, that¡¯s the Elisa I know.¡± Elisa asked, ¡°Seren, when you two spend time together, are you also the one taking care of him? Are you the one who buys groceries and cooks meals?¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s mostly Zachary cooking at home. Nana said that Zachary isn¡¯t a good cook, so she told me to give him the chance to practice more. That way, I¡¯ll be well fed as his skills improve.¡± Elisaughed loudly. ¡°Old Mrs. York is really Zachary¡¯s nana. She¡¯s a very smart woman. She¡¯s like an overgrown child, but she¡¯s very respectable. She¡¯s much better than my grandma. When my grandma was alive, she constantly tormented my mom and nitpicked her, giving her all sorts of difficulties.¡± ¡°Everyone in the York family is great.¡± Elisa agreed with Serenity¡¯s statement. Chapter 1078 Chapter 1078 Chapter 1078 ¡°We¡¯re also relieved after hearing that it¡¯s Zachary taking care of you at home. I was really worried that you¡¯d be too timid and take care of all the household chores, then end up living like how Liberty was in the past.¡± Serenity paused her movement before continuing, ¡°I learned from my sister¡¯s experience. I won¡¯t live a life like hers.¡± ¡°It¡¯s good to stay aware at all times. I¡¯ve seen many people who lose sight of themselves when they¡¯re in love.¡± Elisa¡¯s phone rang as soon as she finished. It was from the only friend she had before she met Serenity. She answered the call and said, ¡°Seren, my best friend just broke up. I¡¯m going to go see her.¡± ¡°Okay. Drive slowly.¡± Enter title¡­ ¡®Til arrange for someone to go to your hometown to talk to the vige chief about contracting the fields tomorrow. I¡¯ll also help find out what those rtives of yours are up Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. to these days.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Jasmine and Serenity let Elisa take the lead for the investment project. With Elisa¡¯s background, she grew up in a much better environment than Serenity and Jasmine did, so she was best suited to lead the way. ¡°I¡¯ll ask my best friend out to have coffee with you guys another day so you can get to know each other. She¡¯s in a bad mood after breaking up, so she needs to make cheerful friends like you and Jasmine.¡± Elisa¡¯s best friend was also ady from a wealthy family, but she kept a low profile so no one knew who she was. Elisa felt that her best friend could definitely be friends with Serenity and the others. ¡°Sure. Go apany your bestie. Breaking up is no big deal. There are plenty of good men in the world.¡± ¡°She¡¯s been dating her boyfriend for several years and was already discussing marriage. It¡¯s normal for her to feel sad after breaking up. I¡¯ll go now, Seren. I have to see Cece.¡± Elisa was worried about her best friend and quickly left the bookstore. After Serenity prepared a loving dinner for Zachary, she packed it in an insted lunch box and said to Jasmine, ¡°I¡¯ll send the food over to him ande back to watch the shop. It¡¯s not after work hours yet, so your boyfriend shouldn¡¯t be here yet.¡± ¡°No problem. Go ahead, I¡¯ll watch the store.¡± Jasmine agreed easily. A few minutester, Serenity drove away from Wiltspoon School. As there was no time to buy other gifts, she thought of simply getting a bouquet of flowers for Zachary. Then, she thought of the flower store owned by Camryn. The flower store was downtown. She would be able to reach Camryn¡¯s flower store if she took a minor detour. Thus, that was what she did. After driving less than ten minutes, she reached downtown and slowed down to find Spring Blossoms. It was not hard to find. Camryn¡¯s flower shop was right by the street, so it was easy to spot. Serenity slowly parked the car in front of the flower store. Just as she was about to get out of the car, someone honked at her from behind. She did not vite any trafficws by parking there, so she did not take the honking to heart and opened the door to get out of the car. The person who honked at her also got out of the car and yelled at her.¡± Didn¡¯t you hear me honk? I want to park there, so hurry up and move your car away¡­ It¡¯s you?¡± The person who kept honking at Serenity was Carrie, Camryn¡¯s half-sister. She had a conflict with Serenity when they first met. ¡°Move your car. I want to park there!¡± Carrie was still extremely arrogant after recognizing Serenity. In her eyes, Serenity was just a country bumpkin. As her mother said, a country bumpkin would always remain a country bumpkin. Serenity would never be able to join the upper crust. It would be time for her to cry after her novelty ran out and Mr. York got tired of her. Chapter 1079 Chapter 1079 Chapter 1079 ¡°Do you own this parking space? Is your car the only one that can park here?¡± Serenity also had a problem with Carrie, so she did not budge an inch. She did not have a good impression of Carrie at all. Carrie choked and said loudly, ¡°This is the front of Camryn¡¯s store. I¡¯m her sister, so I naturally should be able to park here.¡± ¡°Oh, so you¡¯re also fully aware that Ms. Camryn is your sister? What did you do to your sister on the night of the Dowling family¡¯s banquet?¡± Carrie was spoiled by her parents and was used to bullying Camryn for fun. She said righteously, ¡°That mole rat is just for me to make fun of!¡± Serenity really wanted to teach her a lesson. Enter title¡­ How could there be a sister like that? No, she should say that it was Mr. and Mrs. Newman who did not educate their daughter well. Camryn was not born blind. She became blind because of a serious illness she contracted when she was sixteen. However, Mrs. Newman was cruel and did not care about her, and Mr. Newman was so busy with work that he rarely went home. Camryn got so sick that she almost lost her life. It was only when a rtive visited the family and saw Camryn sick that she hurriedly sent Camryn to the hospital. The doctors took more than ten hours to perform emergency care on her, which saved her life. However, she paid the price with her eyes. Even though her eyes looked like a normal person¡¯s, she could no longer see. Serenity and Zachary guessed that Camryn was just pretending to be blind, or she was blind before but recovered her sight without letting anyone know. However, they did not This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. have proof. No matter what, Serenity was full of sympathy toward her future sister-inw. Grandma May said that as the eldest missus of the York family, she had to protect her younger sisters-inw. That was her responsibility as the eldest, and the responsibility of the wife of the next family head. ¡°I¡¯m warning you, bumpkin. If you don¡¯t give up your parking space, don¡¯t me me for crashing your stupid car.¡± Carrie¡¯s eyes were full of disgust when she saw Serenity driving a national MPV worth only a hundred thousand. How could the missus of the York family not even have a proper car? She must not be liked by her inws. What was the York family? A man of Zachary York¡¯s status should be matched with ladies like Carrie. A country bumpkin like Serenity was not even worthy of holding Zachary¡¯s shoes. Mrs. Newman hated Serenity because thetter made a fool of her precious daughter during the Dowling family banquet. She was annoyed that Serenity meddled and helped Camryn, so she ran her mouth about Serenity to Carrie, saying that Serenity followed Mrs. Stone to the banquet that night because she was not acknowledged by the Yorks. Thedies of the York family could not be bothered with Serenity and were not willing to let her socialize with their friends and help introduce her to high society. Thus, Serenity had no choice but to follow Mrs. Stone to the banquet. Mrs. Newman selectively did not tell her daughter about Tania defending Serenity. ¡°How dare you try topete with me for parking space when you¡¯re driving such a useless car? I¡¯m telling you, if you scratch my car, you won¡¯t be able to afford to pay for the repairs even if you sell your body. Do you know how much my car is worth? It costs several million!¡± The Newman family was secretly rich with a fortune of more than a billion. They were ranked among the top in Wiltspoon. Carrie was Mr. Newman¡¯s firstborn. Even though she was a girl, he still treasured her dearly. She got everything she asked for growing up, and he gave her a luxury car worth millions when she turned eighteen. ¡°Firste, first serve. I came here, so I parked here first. Why should I give up my spot to you? If you crash my car, I¡¯ll make sure you pay for a new one. I was just thinking about getting a new car anyway.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t pay you a single penny even after I turn your car into scrap metal,¡± Carrie said loudly. Chapter 1080 Chapter 1080 Chapter 1080 Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Carrie Newman!¡± Camryn, who was manning the store inside, heard the argument at the entrance and slowly walked out with her white cane. Serenity looked at her and saw that she was the same as that night. She worerge ck sunsses so that her eyes were hidden, and her stunning face was still as expressionless as that night. ¡°What are you screaming at?¡± Camryn was totally familiar with her own territory. When she heard the sound of two people quarreling, she determined their positions and walked up to Serenity, asking warmly, ¡°Are you Mrs. York?¡± ¡°What Mrs. York? That¡¯s just a hillbilly. Don¡¯t bother ttering her, mole rat. Just you wait. A country bumpkin like her will be chased out of the York family soon. I don¡¯t believe that Enter title¡­ Mr. York actually likes a country bumpkin like her. Carrie hated it when others called Serenity Mrs. York. She did not dare go after Zachary because of his cold nature, but she was ambitious and wanted to marry into the York family too. There were nine young masters in the York family. Her mother picked out the one with the gentlest temperament out of nine, the seventh son. He was two to three years older than her, but her mother said that only a man a little older than her would dote on her and spoil her. Carrie was capricious and bad-tempered, so she needed someone good-natured like him to indulge her. She thought, ¡®I¡¯ll be marrying into the York family in the future. I¡¯ll never ept a hick like Serenity as my sister-inw.¡¯ Therefore, she could not ept people calling Serenity Mrs. York. ¡°Shut your mouth!¡± Camryn snapped coldly. Without waiting for Carrie¡¯s reaction, she said to Serenity apologetically, ¡°Mrs. York, she was spoiled rotten by my mother and doesn¡¯t know what¡¯s good for her. Please don¡¯t take offense.¡± ¡°You damned mole rat. How dare you scold me? Don¡¯t think that you can act like an older sister just because Daddy helped you this time and didn¡¯t let me teach you a lesson. I¡¯m telling you, they¡¯re my parents, and they¡¯re my family. What right do you have to lecture me? ¡°Do you think you could remain at home if not for the fact that I need a punching bag? My mom would¡¯ve kicked you out long ago.¡± Even if Camryn went home now, she lived in the nanny¡¯s room. Her uncle cum stepfather told her that it was inconvenient for her to go upstairs since she could not see, so he told her to stay in the nanny¡¯s room on the first floor. The nanny¡¯s room was split into two, with therger half given to the housekeeper while the smaller half was given to her, the eldest daughter of the Newman family. Serenity noticed Camryn¡¯s grip on her cane tightened at Carrie¡¯s words. She wondered how much this girl suffered silently. There must be something she was unwilling to leave behind if she stuck around to endure it for so many years. Carrie tried to p Camryn as she yelled at thetter, but Serenity grabbed her wrist. Serenity flung Carrie¡¯s hand away and said coldly, ¡°Would you believe me if I said I¡¯ll rip your arm off?¡± ¡°Try me!¡± Serenity sneered. ¡°Sure! Ms. Carrie, my husband told me that it doesn¡¯t matter how many people I offend so long as it¡¯s not them offending me. He¡¯ll definitely seek justice for me.¡± It was quite cool having an overbearing and powerful husband. She could be even more arrogant when she met an arrogant person. Serenity felt like she could do whatever she wanted. Chapter 1081 Chapter 1081 Chapter 1081 While Carrie was young and insolent, it was not like she did not know better. Her mind flew back to her n being foiled by Serenity at the Dowlings¡¯ party. She was manhandled by Serenity and forced to drink the drugged alcohol by Elisa. The drug overtook her sanity and drove her to take her clothes off at the Dowlings¡¯ residence. Carrie¡¯s mother jumped into action and brought her home in haste. Carried had to bathe in ice-cold water to regain her consciousness. However, the same cold bath spiked her fever. Her parents were heartbroken for her. Nevertheless, they did nothing to demand justice for her. This was because the country bumpkin had Mr. York by her side. Her father exined to Carrie that although the Newmans did not operate their business in Wiltspoon, they were not to cross Mr. York. York Corporation had business dealings across major cities, and the bad blood may provoke York Corporation to steal the Newmans¡¯ business. Newman Enterprise would suffer as a consequence of her actions. Carrie¡¯s father also criticized her for going too far-she should not have drugged Camryn. There was more than one way to pop Camryn¡¯s cherry and make her theughingstock of themunity, so to do it at the banquet was uncalled for. If that was not enough, Carrie had ruined their own image. It would be hard for Carrie to find a husband now that the wives of other wealthy families believed she was wicked. That was the first time Carrie realized how powerful Zachary was. Even her parents, who gave her all the love and everything in the world, could do nothing to stand up for her. 1 Serenity gave Carrie a dirty look, acting and speaking cockier than ever. Carrie winced in fear for a change. . ¡°Just you wait, you country bumpkin!¡± With her finger up Serenity¡¯s nose, Carrie snapped a threat before turning on her heel to leave. On her way out, she kicked over several pots of flowers on purpose. Serenity was tempted to chop off Carrie¡¯s legs. Everybody used to say that Elisa was uncouth, ill-tempered, and cocky. Nevertheless,pared to Carrie, Elisa rose above all graces. Elisa was haughty and refused to engage with anyone who did not vibe with her. She would not hesitate to put the person, who got all over her face to befriend her, in their ce. Carrie demonstrated tasteless willfulness and arrogance. 1 She drove away in her multi-million-dor car. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Carrie nned to go home and have a chat with her mother. Carrie did not see an issue of hiring a few thugs to teach Serenity a lesson out of spite. Noah would be the first to jump out and stop Carrie¡¯s n if he knew what Carrie was up to. He had tried the same trick before, and Serenity single-handedly beat him and the thugs up to a pulp. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mrs. York.¡±1 Serenity responded tenderly, ¡°It¡¯s not your fault. You don¡¯t have to apologize to me.¡± ¡°You¡¯re my guest, but Carrie had to ruin it for you. I should¡¯vee earlier, so you didn¡¯t have to suffer through her insults.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°There is a huge social gap between me and my husband. Carrie isn¡¯t the only one who sees me that way, and she won¡¯t be thest. The others have more tact than putting it into words.¡± Youth and arrogance helped Carrie speak the mind of the other wealthy wives. These people saw Serenity as nothing more than a country bumpkin who simply stumbled upon good fortune. ¡°All humans are equal. It only matters what Mr. York thinks of you. Who cares what other people think?¡± Camryn smiled and beckoned for Serenity toe in. She said, ¡°You must be here to buy flowers. Who is the lucky person to receive your flowers?¡± 1 Serenity walked with Camryn into the flower shop. She said, ¡°I¡¯m here to buy flowers for my husband. What do you rmend, Ms. Newman? Can you put together something for me?¡± Chapter 1082 Chapter 1082 Chapter 1082 N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Camryn uttered with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll arrange something for you since you trust me.¡± Putting her cane aside, Camryn began to design a floral bouquet for Serenity. Serenity watched Carmyn handle the task with ease and asked, ¡°Ms. Newman, do you memorize the cing of each type of flower here?¡± While pairing flowers together, Camryn replied, ¡°I have to since I can¡¯t see. I hired some employees to separate the flowers every time the stockes in. They¡¯ll tell me where each type of flower is ced. ¡°My flower shop has been around for a few years now, so I had a lot of time to memorize everything. I think I¡¯m on top of it.¡± Looking into Camryn¡¯s eyes, Serenity probed, ¡°Is there any way you can see again, Ms. Newman?¡± With her smile fading, Camryn answered, ¡°I lost my sight from an illness. I was lucky to even survive. I¡¯m fine without my sight. I¡¯m just grateful to be alive.¡± Due to the sudden blindness, she nearly lost her life to depression and insanity. Nevertheless, she had to persevere. She could not give up on life just like that. With that, she found her reason to live again. She adapted from a life of light to darkness. Looking at the world with her heart, she was able to peek into the souls of men. Sometimes, humans were scarier than the supernatural. Serenity felt sorry and said, ¡°Medical care and medicine are always evolving and developing. You should get eye surgery if you have the money and when the opportunity arises. You might see the light of day. again. ¡°My aunt has never given up on getting me treated. She has brought me to see a lot of ophthalmologists over the years, and she still does.¡± Camryn was fortunate to have an aunt who doted on her. She had three aunts, and only her youngest aunt was closest to her dad and felt bad for Camryn. Her other two aunts were closer to her stepfather as her stepfather was a rich and powerful man who managed Newman Enterprise. Serenity was at a loss for words. ¡°Don¡¯t feel bad for me. I have been blind for a decade. Darkness is my friend now. I can function normally without a cane in familiar environments.¡± Camryn was the one consoling Serenity instead. She helped Serenity with an arrangement and wrapped the flowers up. Camryn picked up the bouquet and turned around to hand it to Serenity with a smile. She said, ¡°The flowers are ready, Mrs. York. Mr. York will be happy to receive the flowers from you.¡± The young couple was getting along better than in the rumors. Mrs. York was loyal and kind. Camryn prayed that Serenity would get the York family¡¯s approval and be happy with Mr. York always. Camryn had limited knowledge of Serenity because her own mother, who was worse than a stepmother, refused to take her to social events and bring her into the wealthy circle because she was blind. She thought Serenity did not have the approval of her inws as mentioned by Mrs. Newman. That was why Serenity was attending social gatherings with Mrs. Stone instead. ¡°Thank you.¡± Serenity thanked Camryn and took the bouquet before asking. ¡°How much do I owe you?¡± ¡°It¡¯s free. I can never repay you for the help thest time. It¡¯s only a bouquet. How can I possibly take money from you?¡± ¡°Business is business. You paid for these flowers, so you should charge me for them. You should at least break even, even if you don¡¯t want to profit from the bouquet.¡± Serenity pulled out two hundred bucks. She recalled Camryn collecting two hundred bucks from Carrie at the Dowlings¡¯. Chapter 1083 Chapter 1083 v Chapter 1083 Serenity would not take no for an answer as she put the two hundred bucks in Camryn¡¯s palm. Camryn felt the money with her fingers before pulling one bill and giving it back to Serenity. She said, ¡°If you insist, I¡¯ll take half the money.¡± Since the girls were not close yet, Serenity relented and took back a hundred-dor bill from Camryn before replying with a grin, ¡°Thank you, Ms. Newman. Your flowers here are beautiful. I¡¯ll be sure to come back for more.¡± Camryn beamed. ¡°You¡¯re always wee. You can call me in advance if you need anything. Just let me know who it is for, and I¡¯ll have the flowers picked out and wrapped up. You cane and collect without waiting.¡± Turning on her heel, she went to the cash register. Camryn held onto the table as she got behind the cash register and pulled the drawer to get a box of business cards. She retrieved a business card before making her way back to Serenity. ¡°This is my business card, Mrs. York.¡± Serenity drew close and took the card. ¡°You can expect a phone call from me when I need your service. Goodbye now, Ms. Newman.¡± ¡°Have a nice day, Mrs. York.¡± Camryn felt her way out of the cash register and walked out with Serenity. With Serenity¡¯s footsteps fading into her ride, Camryn waved her hand and silently bade farewell. Serenity put the bouquet on the passenger¡¯s seat, buckled up, and told Camryn, ¡°Ms. Newman, you should go inside.¡± Camryn smiled. She only turned around and returned to her shop when Serenity started the engine and drove off. Several minutester, Serenity¡¯s worthless junk of a car, as Carrie put it, entered York Corporation. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Zachary had a lot of cars in the garage. He also gave Serenity a new vehicle on Valentine¡¯s Day, but Serenity did not ept the gift. Serenity did not rece her car even after the couple kissed and made up. This was the first car Zachary had ever given to her, so it meant something to Serenity. That was Zachary¡¯s cue to stop getting her car reced. The type of car she drove did not define her as his wife. Seen as the savior by all employees of York Corporation, Serenity arrived at the CEO¡¯s office without a hitch. The door opened before she knocked on the door. Callum was just leaving with files tucked under his arm. He must have had a discussion with Zachary. Callum could tell that Serenity was here to deliver a packed dinner by spotting the flowers in one hand and the food container in the other. Since it was only half an hour until the office hours were over, Zachary could have dinner right away. He was jealous, to say the least. Zachary and Serenity could enjoy their lovey-dovey moment at home. Why did they have to bring it to the office? Callum was tortured every second of the day for being single. ¡°Serenity,¡± Callum greeted with a smile as his gaze fell on the food container. ¡°What did you bring for Zachary, Serenity? Is it heavy? I¡¯ll carry the container for you.¡± He then reached out to grab the box when a hand was one step ahead of taking the load from Serenity. Zachary took the food from his wife while putting a hand on Callum¡¯s back and giving him a push. Callum was propelled right out of the office. Pulling his wife into the office, Zachary quickly mmed the door behind him. Callum was left on the other side of the door. He was speechless. Rubbing his nose, Callum turned on his heel to walk away and mumbled, ¡°Mr. Chaplin, is your CEO so afraid I¡¯ll steal his food? He pushed me out! He pushed me out of the office!¡± Family was nothing in the presence of food. Callum was forced out of there. Mr. Chaplin remarked with a smile, ¡°At least you can see that. I won¡¯t bother to knock when the CEO¡¯s wife is here. I let her knock and show herself in. That way, I won¡¯t be a third wheel and get dirty looks from the boss.¡± Chapter 1084 Chapter 1084 Chapter 1084 Callum responded, ¡°I only ran into Serenity on my way out after a discussion with Zachary. She¡¯s my cousin-inw. I mean, I should at least get to sample when familyes over with food.¡± Mr. Chaplinughed in delight. ¡°That was why Mr. Zachary pushed you out of there.¡± Only Callum would be so bold to pull such a move. Well, he was family with Zachary and Serenity after all, and family would not have a falling out over a tiny matter. Callum pursed her lips. ¡°What¡¯s the big deal? So he has a wife. He acts like none of us can get a wife.¡± ¡°You can get yourself a wife who delivers food to you every day too. All the other single men like me will be jealous of you.¡± Callum choked. His nana¡¯s chosen wife for him was someone blind. There was no way she could cook for him. It was more like the other way round. ¡°Mr. Bucham has a glow to himtely with a spring in his step. Love must be beautiful, I guess.¡± Callum drew close to Mr. Chaplin and tugged on his tie. ¡°Tell me that when you have a girlfriend too.¡± Mr. Chaplin was a single man himself. ¡°I can¡¯tpare myself to Josh. He¡¯s the luckiest guy.¡± Josh and Ms. Sox did not face obstacles in their rtionship. The families of both sides were dying to hear wedding bells soon. The Sox family had nothing on the Buchams when it came to the family fortune. Still, the Soxes were pretty well-to-do, if not rich. Besides, Jasmine¡¯s aunt was Mrs. Lowe, so it elevated Jasmine¡¯s social status to a certain point. Josh and Jasmine could be put in the same social ss. The pair were made for each other as they were nosy and craved gossip. Callum had to hold himself back from asking Josh to dig into Camryn when his nana picked a blind wife for him. Callum did not want Josh involved in his love life. It was not like Callum could do anything about it because Josh always found his way into everybody¡¯s business. After pushing his cousin out of the office, Zachary took the flowers from Serenity and rxed his callous facial features into a smile. His face beamed as bright as the afternoon sun. ¡°What¡¯s the asion? The flowers are beautiful and smell good.¡± He lowered his head for a whiff. His joy and smile made Serenity happy. Serenity replied gleefully, ¡°Oh, no reason. I just thought of giving them to you. Do you like the bouquet?¡± Jasmine had a point. Men needed to feel loved and appreciated too. The flowers she gave him were not worth much money, but he was over the moon by the gift. ¡°I love it. I will love anything you give it, even if it¡¯s a weed.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. ¡°You¡¯ll get your wish for a weed next then.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Sure.¡± Serenity pulled Zachary to sit down on the sofa before uttering with a grin, ¡°Eat your food while it¡¯s hot. I need to hurry back to the shop. Mr. Bucham is having dinner with Jasmine. I need to watch over the shop tonight.¡± Hearing that Josh had a date with Jasmine tonight, Zachary murmured something under his breath. Serenity could not catch what he was saying. ¡°Did you get the flowers from Camryn¡¯s shop?¡± Putting down the bouquet and food container, Zachary got up and walked into the private resting room. He soon returned with a few exquisite-looking bags. He gave the bags to Serenity and said, ¡°I have gifts for you too, Seren.¡± Chapter 1085 Chapter 1085 Chapter 1085 Serenity took the fancy-looking bags from Zachary and asked in glee, ¡°What are these?¡± Taking his seat on the sofa, Zachary replied with a smile, ¡°Well, why don¡¯t you take a look inside?¡± He removed the lid of the food container and dug into his wife¡¯s specially-made dinner. Serenity took a look and responded with a grin, ¡°Skincare products. You¡¯re giving me a lot more than Elisa has bought me.¡± The guy had been jealous. He did not like her using the skincare products given by Elisa and insisted that she should only use the ones he would give her. However, Zachary had not given her any. Taking it as a passing remark, Serenity continued using Elisa¡¯s skincare products. They worked well for her skin and were better than the products she used before anyway. Serenity must admit that women should not skimp in terms of skincare. ¡°I¡¯ll buy all the skincare products for you.¡± Zachary had no idea about the brands used by women as skincare products were not something he had ever bought for women before. He asked his mother in private and took a few of his mother¡¯s suggestions. He believed that his mother would rmend only the best since his mother had always been living a life of the privileged. Serenity was the apple of his eye, so she only deserved the best. She smiled and uttered, ¡°Alright. You can buy skincare products for me.¡± ¡°Seren, do you want to have some food together?¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay. I only made enough for one person. I wanted to invite Callum when I saw him just now, but you wouldn¡¯t have had enough if Callum stayed for dinner too. It was a good thing Callum left.¡± *If Callum was here, he would argue that he was pushed out of there. Acting like nothing ever happened, Zachary remarked, ¡°He knows better than to be a third wheel.¡± Serenity burst intoughter. Feeling chirpy as Zachary ate with gusto, Serenity brought up her run-in with Carrie again during her visit. to Camryn¡¯s shop. ¡°Camryn is really blind. She¡¯s not acting. ¡°She said she lost her sight following an illness. She was lucky to survive. Her aunt has been taking her to the hospital to examine her eyes, but no doctors could treat them. ¡°Ms. Carrie is a devil. I have never met a sister like her.¡± Serenity had a good rtionship with her sister growing up, so it was hard to swallow when she witnessed Carrie¡¯s treatment of Camryn. The sisters were like enemies. Carrie even said that Camryn was her personal amusement since she was not kicked out of the Newman family. Zachary nonchntly remarked, ¡°That¡¯s her business. Callum should learn more about her and dig into her history. The best we can do is watch. We shouldn¡¯t interfere.¡± ¡°But Callum isn¡¯t doing anything though.¡± Serenity was anxious for something to happen and be done. She suddenly felt herself in Grandma May¡¯s shoes. Grandma May had a lot of grandsons, and every one of them was an elite in their own right. Nevertheless, her grandsons seemed to be out of luck when it came to love, and Grandma May was desperate to push them in the right direction. ¡°Nana gave them a year. Why should we feel anxious when they aren¡¯t pressed for time? No matter the progress, Nana will get what she wants. There¡¯s no stopping Nana once she sets her mind on something.¡± Zachary had a pretty good understanding of his nana since the olddy raised him to be a sessor to the family business. ¡°That¡¯s true. We¡¯ll just wait and see how everything turns out. I think things will be interesting for Callum and Kevin. It¡¯s easy to catch on to Callum¡¯s love story since he¡¯s here. Kevin is too far away. By the time we catch wind of anything, Kevin would probably be bringing Mr. Queen home to meet the parents. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. ¡°Oh, I mean, Ms. Queen.¡± 1 Hayden¡¯s disguise as a man left a deep impression on Serenity. She looked so cool. Besides, Hayden introduced herself as the heir of the Queens in Jensburg. Serenity wondered how Grandma May saw through Hayden¡¯s disguise. Chapter 1086 Chapter 1086 Chapter 1086 ¡°They are bound toe and beg us for help,¡± Zachary predicted. Serenity chuckled sarcastically. Zachary was like a brick wall. What could he do if his cousins came to him for help? Zachary was probably only good for taunts and horrible ideas. ¡°You don¡¯t believe me, babe.¡± ¡°Not at all.¡± Zachary stared into her eyes and said, ¡°We¡¯ll just have to wait and see. They¡¯lle to me as the senior male figure in the family when they¡¯re in trouble. Even if I can¡¯t do anything to help, I can lend an ear.¡± Since Zachary¡¯s cousins had the utmost respect and trust in Zachary, Serenity had confidence in Zachary¡¯s prediction. ¡°Did Ms. Carrie get into a disagreement with you?¡± Serenity mentioned running into Carrie and the feud between the sisters, but there was nothing further about what happened between Serenity and Carrie. Sure, Carrie was cocky, but Serenity would always put Carrie in her ce. Since he asked, Serenity came clean to Zachary about Carrie¡¯s arrogant behavior. Serenity did not want to give him another reason to moan about her keeping things from him as if he was not family. Zachary scowled grimacingly as he got up and walked away. He soon returned and put the car keys to his Rolls Royce in Serenity¡¯s hand. He domineeringly uttered, Take this car, Seren. Let¡¯s see if Ms. Carrie will call your ride junk again. The nerve of her to threaten to bang your car.¡± Mr. Newman hade in person to apologize on behalf of his wife and daughter. However, it appeared that Ms. Carrie had not learned her lesson. Ms. Carrie had the audacity to hold it against Serenity! ¡°You can¡¯t stoop to a crazy person¡¯s level and go crazy with them.¡± Serenity returned the car keys to him. ¡°I love driving my pile of junk.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary eximed, ¡°I can¡¯t stand people looking down on you.¡± ¡°A car isn¡¯t going to change someone¡¯s perception of me. Even if I drive the Rolls Royce, people are just going to say that I¡¯m a gold digger, and I owe it all to you. They¡¯ll still look down on me.¡± The only way to get people to quit belittling her was to be strong with her own strength. Zachary was speechless. Pulling Serenity into his arms, he lovingly and helplessly uttered, ¡°You¡¯re stubborn. Do you know that, Seren? You can really test me sometimes.¡± Serenity wrapped her arms around his muscr waist and replied with a smile, ¡°That¡¯s who I am. You can¡¯t change me. Just bear with me.¡± ¡°I will always put up with you.¡± The couple shared a lingering cuddle until Serenity nudged him away. She asked, ¡°Are you full? I need to tidy up and get back to the shop.¡± Zachary reluctantly mumbled something under his breath. This time, Serenity caught what he was saying. He was groaning about Josh ditching the business meeting and having a date with his girlfriend. Caught between tears andughter, Serenity remarked, ¡°Why don¡¯t you think about the times you left work in Mr. Bucham¡¯s hands to spend time with me? You should at least give Mr. Bucham and Jasmine some time to go on a date.¡± Zachary pursed his lips without another word. Serenity packed up and rewarded her husband with a passionate kiss. After the deep kiss, she said, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you at home. Please don¡¯t drink too much, or even better, don¡¯t drink at all.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll tell the clients that my wife doesn¡¯t allow me to drink. I¡¯ll have to sleep in the study if I get a drop of alcohol in me. I bet they¡¯ll stop me from drinking too.¡± N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Serenity was at a loss for words. Chapter 1087 Chapter 1087 pare little gifts for him. The couple looked out for one another and always had each other¡¯s best interests at heart. They were a pair made in heaven. ¡°Seren, we¡¯re leaving for our date now.¡± Jasmine held her purse and bouquet given by Josh before announcing her leave to Serenity with a smile. Once Serenity acknowledged her, Jasmine took off with Josh. Serenity was kept upied for a while until thest swarm of students left. She then went into the kitchen to heat her food up and enjoyed her dinner behind the cash register. ¡°Serenity.¡± Holding a bowl in his hands, Mr. Charles from next door was munching on something as he approached. ¡°Are you only having your dinner now, Mr. Charles?¡± ¡°Yeah. Seems like you are too.¡± Mr. Charles inquired with a smile, ¡°Did Jasmine leave? I saw her carrying a bouquet of flowers and leaving with a handsome boy who often drops by your shop. Is he Jasmine¡¯s boyfriend?¡± . ¡°Yes. He¡¯s Mr. Bucham, Jasmine¡¯s boyfriend.¡± Serenity invited Mr. Charles in for a seat. Instead of taking a seat, Mr. Charles cheerfully remarked, ¡°I¡¯m just dropping by to tell you something.¡± Grinning from ear to ear, Mr. Charles spoke in hushed tones, ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you about the bet? I put all my secret stash that you¡¯ll continue to run your business even though you¡¯ve be Mrs. York, and I earned a profit. You¡¯re still working here. ¡°They won¡¯t believe me. They think you¡¯ll just enjoy life as the wife of a rich man and stay out of the public eye now that you¡¯ve be Mrs. York. Let the record show that I won! They lost! Hahaha! It¡¯s a shame that my secret stash isn¡¯t much. Otherwise, I¡¯d win more money.¡± Serenity nearly threw up her food. She congratted Mr. Charles with a smile, ¡°Congrats on winning, Mr. Charles.¡± ¡°It¡¯s just a bit. Hahaha. I should¡¯ve told my wife, so we can put all our money together into the bet. We would have won a lot of money.¡± Serenity told him off, ¡°You will be left with nothing if your wife finds out.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org. She knew that Mrs. Charles wore the pants in the house. Mr. Charles got a monthly allowance of five hundred bucks from his wife and nothing more. Mrs. Charles would give him extra for some cigarettes and alcohol, so Mr. Charles could save the five hundred bucks if he wanted to. Mrs. Charles was on top of the household finances, paying the expenses for Mr. Charles¡¯ parents too. He had nothing to worry about, except his personal allowance of five hundred bucks, so he could save half of the money without a problem. Mr. Charles probably pocketed some money when the stock came in for their shop. In short, he had a sizable stash, and he would have won a lot more from the bet if he put everything he had into it. Of course, Mrs. Charles would confiscate the money if she were to find out. Chapter 1088 Chapter 1088 Chapter 1088 Mr. Charles replied, ¡°That¡¯s true¡­ It¡¯s a good thing I didn¡¯t tell my wife.¡± ¡°Mrs. Charles doesn¡¯t give you much allowance, but she doesn¡¯t let you pay for the other stuff. You don¡¯t have to worry about expenses for your parents and parents-inw, social favors, and expenses for raising your children. You are lucky, Mr. Charles. ¡°It¡¯s not easy to manage money.¡± While munching, Mr. Charles remarked, ¡°I agree, and that¡¯s why I left the finances to my wife since she¡¯s good at it I used to be the one to take care of the finances, but our savings never made it past twenty thousand dors by the end of the year despite our business doing well. Since my wife took over, we have saved close to a hundred thousand dors a year. ¡°I¡¯m happy with the load off my shoulders and the surplus of money in the family ount. My wife is a very fair person. She won¡¯t favor her own family. She gives equal amounts to my parents and her parents. My parents cannot be happier with their daughter-inw. ¡°Serenity, I can tell you right now that my family will be tearing into me if I have a fight with. wife.¡± my Mr. Charles sounded like he was moaning, but he was, in fact, bragging about his happy home. They might not have riches in material things, but Mrs. Charles was very considerate and good at keeping the peace at home. Mrs. Charles was sharp-tongued, but she was a softie under all that tough exterior. The way Mrs. Charles dealt with life and people was something Serenity wanted to learn from her. ¡°Honey! Honey!¡± Mrs. Charles was calling him from next door. Mr. Charles answered his wife¡¯s calls before whispering to Serenity, ¡°Keep it between us, okay? I got to . go.¡± Serenity acknowledged with a smile. Mr. Charles turned around and walked out while heeding his wife¡¯s calls. Once he was gone, Serenity finished thest of her dinner and brought her empty te to the kitchen. She cleaned the dishes and popped out for a quick chat with the neighbors. She had been neighbors with the other store owners for years, so a bit of social engagement went a long way. The neighbors thought Serenity would distance herself from them now that she had be the wife of the wealthiest heir. It never crossed their minds that Serenity was the same old person toward her neighbors, albeit a little busier than before. Serenity enjoyed a good talk with her neighbors before returning to the shop to work on her crafts. The few women who wanted to learn about her crafting skill had replied. All she needed to do was prepare the materials for them as they already had the tools. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. She also checked on her orders, stock, and fulfillment. These women were housewives and depended on their husband¡¯s single ie. Serenity was happy to pay them by the day so long as the orders and quality checks were met. They would be paid by the order, so it all boiled down to the amount of hard work they put in. The extra ie would ease these women¡¯s financial troubles. By ten o¡¯clock at night, Serenity shut the shop since there was no business. She was ready to go home and wait for her man¡¯s return. A few minutester, Serenity drove away from Wiltspoon School. Meanwhile, Carrie got a call from a thug who told her, ¡°Ms. Jones, the woman you wanted us to keep an eye on is closing shop. She¡¯s driving home now.¡± ¡°Keep your eyes on her and follow her to a road without surveince before stopping her car. I want you to beat her up and smash her car real bad. Don¡¯t forget to disguise yourselves with a mask and sunsses. Don¡¯t let her see your faces. ¡°I¡¯ll wire you the rest of the money once the job is done. You can take the money and take cover for a while. Return to Wiltspoon once the whole thing is blown over.¡± Although Carrie was willful and rash, she knew that Zachary stood behind Serenity. Zachary would hunt Carrie down if she got her revenge on Serenity. Hence, she hired some thugs to do the deed and leave Wiltspoon. That way, the whole thing would not trace back to her. Chapter 1089 Chapter 1089 Chapter 1089 ¡°Alright. We got it.¡± These thugs had no idea who Serenity was. Carrie was not that dumb to let them in on it. No amount of money could buy these people to do her dirty work if Carrie let out that Serenity was Mrs. York. ¡°Delete my number when you get the final payment. I can guarantee your safety so long as you do as I say. ¡°Don¡¯t me me for what¡¯s toe if I catch you bbering about it.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Jones. We won¡¯t breathe a word to anyone. We¡¯re in this together since you pay us to do the job.¡± Truth be told, Carrie did not even tell the thugs her real family name. She intended to dump the SIM card after the deed was done and she was through with contacting the thugs. The number was not registered to her name anyway. Carrie hung up the call. Thinking that Serenity was about to get it, she burst outughing. Serenity should have minded her own business instead of helping Camryn. It was time Serenity got a taste of her own medicine. Knock, knock. Pulling herself back from theughter, Carrie asked, ¡°Who is it?¡± ¡°It¡¯s me, Carrie.¡± Carrie went to open the door and let her mother in. ¡°I was just going to my room when I heard youughing, Carrie. Did something nice happen? Share with me, so I can have augh too.¡± Mrs. Newman asked with a smile. Since returning from the Dowlings¡¯ party, Mrs. Newman had been feeling bad for what happened to her darling daughter. ¡°I did something, Mom.¡± Carrie first asked her mother, ¡°Is the blind girl back yet?¡± ¡°Not yet. What¡¯s the matter? Did youe up with something new to have a go at her? Otherwise, your wouldn¡¯t haveughed so happily. I could hear you through the door.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Hearing that Camryn was not back yet, Carrie had nothing to worry about. Her mother wore the pants in the house, so everybody¡¯s loyalty was to Mom. No one would take Camryn¡¯s side. Carrie told her mother the whole incident about going to Camryn¡¯s shop to look for trouble and running into Serenity and getting into a fight with her. Picking up that her daughter got into another conflict with Serenity, Mrs. Newman turned wicked and chilly in the eyes. Nevertheless, she quickly got a grip on herself and chided her daughter, ¡°Your father said we should steer clear of Mr. York for now. Mr. York is currently still into the country bumpkin. Don¡¯t be at odds with her. Your father will have to grovel at their feet for forgiveness if we offend her again. ¡°Your father is a proud man. He¡¯d never bow down to anyone, and yet he had to apologize because of us. Although we don¡¯t run our business in Wiltspoon, York Corporation is not one to be underestimated.¡± Zachary mentioned that Serenity took a liking to Camryn and wanted to befriend Camryn when her husband went to apologize to Zachary. In other words, Zachary was warning the Newmans to stop picking on Camryn. The whole family sure has a knack for getting into other people¡¯s business.¡± Mrs Newman whined about Zachary in her mind. Mr. Newman also went away on business from that very day. He was worried that Zachary might attack his business out of nowhere as he did with Lowe Enterprise Lowe Enterprise never saw iting Chapter 1090 Chapter 1090 Chapter 1090 No one ever spoke the truth behind York Corporation¡¯s attack on Lowe Enterprise, and now the two big companies had resumed their partnership. The people on the outside assumed someone from Lowe Enterprise made a misstep that led to York. Corporation¡¯s termination of their partnership. Mr. Lowe had repeatedly sought Mr. York for negotiation before finally reconciling their business rtions. ¡°But I can¡¯t stand the cockiness of the country bumpkin! She has no right to give me an attitude. She¡¯s nothing once Mr. York is bored with her.¡± Carrie pursed her lips and remarked, ¡°I can¡¯t move past this without getting even with her. Mom, I hired. eight thugs to go after her. They¡¯re stalking.Serenity and waiting until they get to a blind spot on the road. to stop her car and beat her up.¡± With color draining from her face, Mrs. Newman anxiously uttered, ¡°Where did you find these people? Do you have everything in order? Don¡¯t leave any traces that can lead back to you. Also, I heard the country bumpkin learned self-defense and can kickbox. Make sure they don¡¯t drop the ball on this.¡± Carrie nonchntly replied, ¡°I took sses in kickboxing too. What¡¯s the point? I can¡¯t even take down our bodyguard. It¡¯s just for show.¡± Mr. Newman uttered, ¡°That¡¯s true¡­ The Hunt girl may have picked up a self-defense skill, but I never heard how good she is. You should call and check on the progress.¡± Once again, Serenity was stopped in the middle of the street in the dark of night. She thought it was Noah, the b*stard, again. At a closer look, Serenity did not see Noah anywhere. The b*stard should have lost his nerve by now after she gave it to him twice. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Serenity did not dwell on the matter, nor did she have time to think about it. The people, who made her stop in the middle of the road, started bashing her car with metal rods before she even got out of the car. While she hopped out of the car, two men swung their metal rods at her. Without evading the blows, she calmly faced the attack and grabbed ahold of the iing rod while striking a kick in the man¡¯s belly. She seized control of the metal rod when the man groaned in pain. Turning around, Serenity flung her arm out to block the second approaching metal rod. Serenity might stand no chance against these thugs if she had no weapon. Now that she was armed, her mind was in a moreposed state. Holding onto the metal rod, she knocked the weapons off the other three men. The bodyguards, who Zachary secretly assigned to protect Serenity, jumped into action. She kept the metal rod and watched as her two bodyguards beat the living daylights out of the thugs. Once these thugs were rolling on the ground in pain, one of the bodyguards called the cops while the other phoned Zachary. Serenity removed the masks of these thugs to find these men to be in their twenties and thirties. pping one of their faces, Serenity asked, ¡°Who sent you to ambush me?¡± The person kept a tight lid.. ¡°You won¡¯t say, huh? It¡¯s fine. You¡¯ll talk when you get to the police station. Do you think you¡¯re saved because there isn¡¯t any surveince along this road?¡± ¡°Missus, Mr. Zachary will be right here. We have called the cops.¡± The bodyguard¡¯s formal way of addressing Serenity sparked rm bells in the man who was pped. He hemmed and hawed a question, ¡°W-Who are you?¡± Serenity amusedly poked his face with the metal rod and replied, ¡°You stopped my car, wrecked my ride, and attacked me. Yet, you don¡¯t know who I am. ¡°Well, you don¡¯t have to be scared. I¡¯m just an ordinary person. You can call me a nobody. Only, I have a rather protective husband.¡± ¡°W-Who is your husband?¡± With a smile, Serenity answered, ¡°People call him Mr. York.¡± Chapter 1091 Chapter 1091 Chapter 1091 Color washed off the thug¡¯s face. ¡°Are you talking about Mr. York from the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon?¡± ¡°Oh, it turns out my husband is pretty famous. Even a hooligan knows his name.¡± The few thugs got onto their hands and feet right away as they walled, screamed, and pounded their fists on the ground. They chewed Ms. Jones out. No wonder the woman paid a lot to hire a group of men to go against a single young woman. She was thedy of the York household. Mrs. York had been the talk of the towntely. Even the thugs had caught wind of the woman. How did they end up in the hands of Mrs. York? Ms. Jones sure put them in a spot. Noah would call them unlucky too if he knew about this. ¡°Have mercy on us, Mrs. York. We didn¡¯t know who you were and trashed your car. We can make it up to you with another car. Please look upon yourself to forgive us.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll talk! I¡¯ll tell you who told us to smash your car. It¡¯s Ms. Jones. Her phone number is XXXXXXXXX. She gave us a lot of money to follow you, trash your car, and beat you up.¡± The two bodyguards who were there to protect Serenity had already known someone was following Serenity. They wanted to take out the thugs without anyone noticing, but the thugs acted fast and stopped Serenity¡¯s car before they could do anything. Last year, Serenity was ambushed by a group of thugs on her way home in the middle of the night. Serenity knocked them all out without a scratch herself. Those thugs took a beating and were held in custody for fifteen days. ¡°Ms. Jones?¡± *Serenity fell into contemtion. She did not recall any Ms. Jones. Rising to her feet, she said, ¡°Are you in touch with her? Does she give you cash or a wire transfer?¡± ¡°A middle person contacted us and gave us a deposit. Ms. Jonester got in touch with us and talked about a wire transfer once the deed is done. We were to take the money and leave Wiltspoon. She guaranteed our safety.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. It appeared the woman was not very cautious. She contacted the thugs through a middle person in the beginning, butter she spoke to the thugs directly. She was either cocky or young and inexperienced. For some reason, Carrie came to mind. Carrie was only twenty years old, so she was pretty young. She was spoiled rotten, which meant she fit the bill of being cocky. ¡°Call Ms. Jones right now and record the call. Tell her that you have finished the job. You wrecked my car and beat me up, so she should make the final payment. The call recording would give Serenity proof as Serenity intended to sue Ms. Jones. The final payment could also serve as evidence. ¡°What would happen to us¡­¡± Serenity jabbed the man¡¯s face with the metal rod again. ¡°You¡¯re not in the position to negotiate with me. Do as I say, or my husband will take his anger out on you. That won¡¯t be my problem. ¡°I would try and stop my husband from getting angry if you do as I say. At least, I can stop him from killing you.¡± The thugs would nevery a finger on the woman if they had known that she was Mrs. York. Plus, why was it not mentioned that Mrs. York could fight? She was an expert at it too. Chapter 1092 Chapter 1092 Chapter 1092 The thug chose to listen to Serenity and gave Carrie a call. Serenity told the bodyguards to prop him up for the call. The thug would be panting for air while prostrating and talking at the same time. Carrie was urged by her mother to call the thugs when the call came in. She happily told her mother,¡± They¡¯re calling. Mom! They¡¯re calling! I bet they finished the job.¡± She eagerly took the call. ¡°Ms. Jones, we trashed the woman¡¯s car and beat her up. She¡¯s knocked out cold but still breathing. She¡¯s not dead. Hurry up and make the final payment. We want to leave Wiltspoon now.¡± ¡°It¡¯s good that you didn¡¯t kill her. Snap a photo. I need to be sure that you finished the task before I can pay you.¡± ¡°We really beat her up real bad. We left the scene immediately since she was bleeding. How could we possibly have stayed for a photo? Hurry up and pay up. We need to run away.¡± ¡°Are you sure you hit the right woman?¡± Carrie was not scared at all when she heard Serenity was mangled, bleeding, and unconscious. In fact, she felt the thrill. She finally got her revenge. Serenity should have stayed out of her business. The nerve of Serenity toe in her way! Carrie¡¯s father even had to apologize to Mr. York. ¡°Yes, of course. She has a bookshop at the entrance of Wiltspoon School and drives a national car. We¡¯ve followed her since she left the bookshop. There¡¯s no way we got the wrong person.¡± ¡°That¡¯s her, all right. Okay, I¡¯ll wire the money to you. Take the money and leave Wiltspoon right away. Delete my number, and don¡¯t breathe a word to anyone. Otherwise, I can¡¯t help you. ¡°But what if you¡¯re scamming me since you didn¡¯t take a picture? I¡¯ll pay half of the money and the remainder after I¡¯m sure the woman¡¯s beaten up tomorrow.¡± ¡°Can you give the money straight away? We¡¯vemitted a crime, but you¡¯re holding half the payment now.¡± The thug would have given Carrie a piece of his mind if Serenity did not stare at him to stop him from saying more than he should. The thug wanted to crawl through the radio wave and strangle Carrie. ¡°I have the money, and I keep to my word. I¡¯ll pay the remaining amount when I receive the word tomorrow. In fact, I¡¯ll tip you extra.¡± Carrie then terminated the call and went online to wire the funds. Once the thugs got the money, Serenity gestured for the bodyguards to grab the thug¡¯s phone. They added the thug¡¯s contact number and used the thug¡¯s phone to send the voice recording to one of their phones. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°The police will be here soon. You should confess your crimes.¡± The thugs were at a loss for words. They were tempted to st Ms. Jones. With the bodyguard ying the voice recording, Serenity listened to the female voice and realized that it was not some Ms. Jones. It was Carrie. Her guess was pretty urate. Ms. Jones was a cover name Carrie used. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary arrived in haste. Police were dispatched from the nearby police station too. The police car followed behind Zachary¡¯s personal ride. ¡°Are you alright, Seren?¡± After Zachary got the call from the bodyguard, he ditched his clients and hurried here with his security detail. He got out of the car and tookrge strides toward Serenity. Putting his hands on Serenity¡¯s shoulders, he nervously scanned Serenity¡¯s body to make sure she was unharmed. Serenity was fine apart from a few strands of wandering hair. Zachary sighed in relief. Chapter 1093 Chapter 1093 Chapter 1093 I¡¯m fine, Zachary. My car was smashed. That¡¯s all.¡± The thugs were bashing her car by the time Serenity got out. She and the two bodyguards quickly subdued the perpetrators, but it was toote for the car. Zachary nced at the smashed car and remarked, ¡°All that matters is that you¡¯re safe. We can always rece the car.¡± ¡°But you gave me this car.¡± 7 gave you one on Valentine¡¯s Day too. You can drive that and send this one for repairs.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I prefer the car brand I have right now.¡± It was discreet Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll take you to get a new car of the same brand tomorrow.¡± She had a thing against showing off and parading her riches as the wife of the richest man. Zachary was happy to meet her standard and lifestyle. He would do anything to please her so long as he was in the picture. ¡°Did you manage to get who is behind this?¡± Zachary¡¯s question was meant for his bodyguards. ¡°It¡¯s Carrie,¡± Serenity answered. Since everybody here had not met Carrie, they were unfamiliar with her voice. Nevertheless, Serenity had the pleasure of meeting Carrie twice and got into arguments twice as well. Carrie¡¯s arrogant and ear- piercing voice was imprinted in Serenity¡¯s mind. As Carrie did not settle her outstanding payment with the thugs, the police could take over from here and locate Carrie in no time. ¡°Ms. Carrie of the Newman family?¡± Zachary scowled. The Newman man sure had a way of raising his daughter. He came a few days ago to apologize. Well, it did not take long for his daughter to hire thugs to barricade the road and bash the car. It was the same stunt Noah pulled. Serenity would have taken a beating before the bodyguards showed up if she did not know how to fight. It was not a matter Zachary would dismiss. Now that the police were here, the group went to the station to give their statements. With the voice and dashcam recordings in hand, the thugs¡¯ fates were sealed even if they were sent to the hospital. Serenity, as the victim, was only acting out of self-defense. Thest time Serenity was here on a self-defense case left quite an impression on everyone at the station. Several months passed, and they were brought back down memoryne. While they did not recall who Serenity was, they remembered that Serenity was a young and beautiful girl. She was calm in the face of armed hooligans and could turn the tables in the shortest amount of time. Now that they found out that Serenity was Mrs. York, the police believed it really took some guts, skills, and something extra to be able to secure the footing as the wife of the richest heir. Ms. Jones was a cover name Carrie used. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary arrived in haste. Police were dispatched from the nearby police station too. The police car followed behind Zachary¡¯s personal ride. ¡°Are you alright, Seren?¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. After Zachary got the call from the bodyguard, he ditched his clients and hurried here with his security detail. He got out of the car and tookrge strides toward Serenity. Putting his hands on Serenity¡¯s shoulders, he nervously scanned Serenity¡¯s body to make sure she was unharmed. Serenity was fine apart from a few strands of wandering hair. Zachary sighed in relief. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Zachary. My car was smashed. That¡¯s all ¡± The thugs were bashing her car by the time Serenity got out. She and the two bodyguards quickly subdued the perpetrators, but it was toote for the car. Zachary nced at the smashed car and remarked, ¡°All that matters is that you¡¯re safe. We can always rece the car ¡± ¡°But you gave me this car.¡± 7 gave you one on Valentine¡¯s Day too. You can drive that and send this one for repairs.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I prefer the car brand I have right now.¡± It was discreet. Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll take you to get a new car of the same brand tomorrow.¡± She had a thing against showing off and parading her riches as the wife of the richest man. Zachary was happy to meet her standard and lifestyle. He would do anything to please her so long as he was in the picture. ¡°Did you manage to get who is behind this?¡± Zachary¡¯s question was meant for his bodyguards. ¡°It¡¯s Carrie,¡± Serenity answered. Since everybody here had not met Carrie, they were unfamiliar with her voice. Nevertheless, Serenity had the pleasure of meeting Carrie twice and got into arguments twice as well. Carrie¡¯s arrogant and ear- piercing voice was imprinted in Serenity¡¯s mind. As Carrie did not settle her outstanding payment with the thugs, the police could take over from here and locate Carrie in no time. ¡°Ms. Carrie of the Newman family?¡± Zachary scowled. The Newman man sure had a way of raising his daughter. He came a few days ago to apologize. Well, it did not take long for his daughter to hire thugs to barricade the road and bash the car. It was the same stunt Noah pulled. Serenity would have taken a beating before the bodyguards showed up if she did not know how to fight. It was not a matter Zachary would dismiss. Now that the police were here, the group went to the station to give their statements. With the voice and dashcam recordings in hand, the thugs¡¯ fates were sealed even if they were sent to the hospital. Serenity, as the victim, was only acting out of self-defense. Thest time Serenity was here on a self-defense case left quite an impression on everyone at the station. Several months passed, and they were brought back down memoryne. While they did not recall who Serenity was, they remembered that Serenity was a young and beautiful girl. She was calm in the face of armed hooligans and could turn the tables in the shortest amount of time. Now that they found out that Serenity was Mrs. York, the police believed it really took some guts, skills, and something extra to be able to secure the footing as the wife of the richest heir. The voice recording and Serenity¡¯s statement pointed the evidence to Carrie. Knowing that Carrie had not settled the final payment with the thugs, the police set out to the Newmans¡¯ residence that night itself to ask for Carrie¡¯s cooperation in the ongoing investigation. Since the call history was still avable on Carrie¡¯s phone, there was no way Carrie could talk her way out of it. Chapter 1094 Chapter 1094 Chapter 1093 I¡¯m fine, Zachary. My car was smashed. That¡¯s all.¡± The thugs were bashing her car by the time Serenity got out. She and the two bodyguards quickly subdued the perpetrators, but it was toote for the car. Zachary nced at the smashed car and remarked, ¡°All that matters is that you¡¯re safe. We can always rece the car.¡± ¡°But you gave me this car.¡± 7 gave you one on Valentine¡¯s Day too. You can drive that and send this one for repairs.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity replied, ¡°I prefer the car brand I have right now.¡± It was discreet Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll take you to get a new car of the same brand tomorrow.¡± She had a thing against showing off and parading her riches as the wife of the richest man. Zachary was happy to meet her standard and lifestyle. He would do anything to please her so long as he was in the picture. ¡°Did you manage to get who is behind this?¡± Zachary¡¯s question was meant for his bodyguards. ¡°It¡¯s Carrie,¡± Serenity answered. Since everybody here had not met Carrie, they were unfamiliar with her voice. Nevertheless, Serenity had the pleasure of meeting Carrie twice and got into arguments twice as well. Carrie¡¯s arrogant and ear- piercing voice was imprinted in Serenity¡¯s mind. As Carrie did not settle her outstanding payment with the thugs, the police could take over from here and locate Carrie in no time. ¡°Ms. Carrie of the Newman family?¡± Zachary scowled. The Newman man sure had a way of raising his daughter. He came a few days ago to apologize. Well, it did not take long for his daughter to hire thugs to barricade the road and bash the car. It was the same stunt Noah pulled. Serenity would have taken a beating before the bodyguards showed up if she did not know how to fight. It was not a matter Zachary would dismiss. Now that the police were here, the group went to the station to give their statements. With the voice and dashcam recordings in hand, the thugs¡¯ fates were sealed even if they were sent to the hospital. Serenity, as the victim, was only acting out of self-defense. Thest time Serenity was here on a self-defense case left quite an impression on everyone at the station. Several months passed, and they were brought back down memoryne. While they did not recall who Serenity was, they remembered that Serenity was a young and beautiful girl. She was calm in the face of armed hooligans and could turn the tables in the shortest amount of time. Now that they found out that Serenity was Mrs. York, the police believed it really took some guts, skills, and something extra to be able to secure the footing as the wife of the richest heir. Ms. Jones was a cover name Carrie used. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary arrived in haste. Police were dispatched from the nearby police station too. The police car followed behind Zachary¡¯s personal ride. ¡°Are you alright, Seren?¡± After Zachary got the call from the bodyguard, he ditched his clients and hurried here with his security detail. He got out of the car and tookrge strides toward Serenity. Putting his hands on Serenity¡¯s shoulders, he nervously scanned Serenity¡¯s body to make sure she was unharmed. Serenity was fine apart from a few strands of wandering hair. Zachary sighed in relief. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Zachary. My car was smashed. That¡¯s all ¡± The thugs were bashing her car by the time Serenity got out. She and the two bodyguards quickly subdued the perpetrators, but it was toote for the car. Zachary nced at the smashed car and remarked, ¡°All that matters is that you¡¯re safe. We can always rece the car ¡± ¡°But you gave me this car.¡± 7 gave you one on Valentine¡¯s Day too. You can drive that and send this one for repairs.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I prefer the car brand I have right now.¡± It was discreet. Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll take you to get a new car of the same brand tomorrow.¡± She had a thing against showing off and parading her riches as the wife of the richest man. Zachary was happy to meet her standard and lifestyle. He would do anything to please her so long as he was in the picture. ¡°Did you manage to get who is behind this?¡± Zachary¡¯s question was meant for his bodyguards. ¡°It¡¯s Carrie,¡± Serenity answered. Since everybody here had not met Carrie, they were unfamiliar with her voice. Nevertheless, Serenity had the pleasure of meeting Carrie twice and got into arguments twice as well. Carrie¡¯s arrogant and ear- piercing voice was imprinted in Serenity¡¯s mind. As Carrie did not settle her outstanding payment with the thugs, the police could take over from here and locate Carrie in no time. ¡°Ms. Carrie of the Newman family?¡± Zachary scowled. The Newman man sure had a way of raising his daughter. He came a few days ago to apologize. Well, it did not take long for his daughter to hire thugs to barricade the road and bash the car. It was the same stunt Noah pulled. Serenity would have taken a beating before the bodyguards showed up if she did not know how to fight. It was not a matter Zachary would dismiss. Now that the police were here, the group went to the station to give their statements. With the voice and dashcam recordings in hand, the thugs¡¯ fates were sealed even if they were sent to the hospital. Serenity, as the victim, was only acting out of self-defense. Thest time Serenity was here on a self-defense case left quite an impression on everyone at the station. Several months passed, and they were brought back down memoryne. While they did not recall who Serenity was, they remembered that Serenity was a young and beautiful girl. She was calm in the face of armed hooligans and could turn the tables in the shortest amount of time. Now that they found out that Serenity was Mrs. York, the police believed it really took some guts, skills, and something extra to be able to secure the footing as the wife of the richest heir. The voice recording and Serenity¡¯s statement pointed the evidence to Carrie. Knowing that Carrie had not settled the final payment with the thugs, the police set out to the Newmans¡¯ residence that night itself to ask for Carrie¡¯s cooperation in the ongoing investigation. Since the call history was still avable on Carrie¡¯s phone, there was no way Carrie could talk her way out of it. Chapter 1095 Chapter 1095 Chapter 1095 ¡°Seren, don¡¯t put the pressure on yourself. We¡¯re only taking preventive measures. Besides, people in our circle often go around with security detail. No one will be caught dead without one.¡± Serenity med herself. ¡°I¡¯m concerned that the Newmans will get back at me through my sister and Sonny.¡± However, she did not regret helping Camryn. Carrie went too far. ¡°It won¡¯t happen. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m here for you. Besides, your sister rented the shop from Duncan. Duncan is pretty responsible as andlord. He won¡¯t let his tenants get into that kind of situation. Heck, he owns themercial space of half the street. He has never had a problem.¡± Duncan had been on the other side of thew before. Even though Duncan had turned away from the dark side, he was still on good terms with many people from his past. No one would stir trouble on his turf. Plus, Duncan was fond of Sonny. Duncan would not sit by and watch if anybody were toy a finger on Sonny. ¡°The only people with the audacity toe after you are the Newman mother and daughter and your rtives. I¡¯ll let Josh know to have eyes on both families. At least we¡¯ll know if they are up to something. and we will be ready for them.¡± Zachary then asked his beloved wife, ¡°Will you still help Camryn if you could turn back time?¡± Serenity replied without a second thought, ¡°I will. She would¡¯ve died if Elisa and I didn¡¯t jump in that night.¡± It never urred to Serenity that Carrie would have no respect for thew. Zachary smiled, knowing that his wife would not turn away from justice. ¡°In that case, you shouldn¡¯t me yourself. What you did is admirable. We can¡¯t please everybody in this world. There are bound to be a few bad apples. ¡°We can¡¯t stop these bad apples froming into our lives. All we can do is keep our guard up. Anyway, go and take a bath. It¡¯ste.¡± Serenity echoed his thoughts. Even if she did nothing, there would still be people who would not see eye to eye with her and would wish her the worst of luck. Since she had no regrets about helping Camryn, she should not dwell and me herself further. As for the possible retaliation from the Newmans, she should go with Zachary¡¯s advice and just be ready for the vile family. Having gotten over it, Serenity went into the bathroom for a bath while Zachary sat down on the bed to give Josh a call. Josh and Jasmine had just arrived at the Soxes¡¯ residence after a night out together. He wanted to come in for a drink when Zachary¡¯s call came. Jasmine said it waste and her family was asleep anyway. He was told to go home and rest. He watched Jasmine enter the house and took the call from Zachary Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Are you still on a date?¡± ¡°It¡¯ste. I just drove my girlfriend home. Why are you not asleep at this hour?¡± 1/2 Zachary answered, ¡°Something happened to my wife again.¡± Getting a bad feeling, Josh asked with concern, ¡°What happened? Did you fight or have another misunderstanding? Did you drink at tonight¡¯s business meeting and screw around when you were drunk? Zachary was speechless. ¡°You¡¯re the one screwing around. I didn¡¯t even drink a drop of alcohol.¡± ¡°Not a drop? And Mr. Moe was fine with that?¡± Mr. Moe was the client Zachary met tonight. ¡°I was straight with Mr. Moe that my wife doesn¡¯t like me drinking. She doesn¡¯t like the stench of alcohol. on me. I have to sleep in the study if I drink, and Mr. Moe called me an uxorious husband. I drank tea instead.¡± Chapter 1096 Chapter 1096 Chapter 1096 Josh uttered with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re not the Zachary I know anymore. I can¡¯t believe you said that to Mr. Moe.¡± ¡°Seren was stopped in the middle of the road, and her car was trashed when she was on her way home.¡± Josh was intrigued. ¡°Who¡¯s the fool to block the missus¡¯s car? I bet the person is in the hospital right now.¡± Zachary was caught between tears andughter. ¡°I¡¯ll get someone on the case right now.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine I know who it is.¡± ¡°Who?¡± Curious, Josh asked. He was nosy, and gossip was his game. His imagination wandered to great heights ¡°Was it your admirer?¡± Zachary replied. ¡°Yours, actually.¡± He added peevishly. ¡°It¡¯s Ms. Carrie of the Newman family.¡± It did not take long for Josh to find out who Zachary was talking about. Josh uttered, ¡°Ms. Carrie must have it in for the missus. Mr. Newman apologized not too long ago, and here his precious daughter was at it again. ¡°Was she arrested?¡± ¡°We called the cops on her. She¡¯s been detained since we have evidence. Josh, I need a favor from you. I need eyes on the Newmans and Seren¡¯s rtives.¡± Josh was quick to catch on. ¡°Are you worried that Mr. Newman might try to get even?¡± ¡°It¡¯s better to be ready for them. Ms. Carrie is the Newmans¡¯ precious daughter. They spoiled her rotten. There¡¯s no guarantee they won¡¯te after Serenity now that their daughter is detained. At least we¡¯ll know what¡¯sing if we keep our eyes peeled.¡± . Seeing that his best friend had a point, Josh dly answered, ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll make sure I have people spying on these families¡¯ every move.¡± ¡°Tell your people to be smart about it. The Newmans aren¡¯t easy to deal with.¡± Zachary and his wife had discussed that the circumstances around the death of Camryn¡¯s biological father were suspicious. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Mr. Newman married his brother¡¯s wife, saying that he was taking care of his brother¡¯s wife and daughter following his brother¡¯s death. However, the public was not blind. There was an intimacy between Mr. and Mrs. Newman without the awkwardness of their former rtionship as inws. Many spected that the pair had a thing from way back then. Only, this was the Newmans¡¯ private affair. The Newman family did not possess the wealth and power they had today. Since the family was not included in the higher society, everybody made a few jokes at the expense of the Newmans for a while before forgetting all about it. Now that they had built their wealth and joined the ranks of billionaires, Mrs. Newman started taking her precious daughters to social events, so her daughter could marry into the upper crust. It was then the Newmans returned to the public eye. Of course, the Newmans may keep to themselves, but the Buchams had connections to dig deep into the Newman family¡¯s history. There was no such thing as a secret to the Buchams. Despite the Buchams¡¯ greatwork of intel, they had better things to do than dig into the Newmans. They would only get the dirt on the Newmans if necessary. Josh answered, ¡°Okay. Don¡¯t worry. I will only send my best men out. They¡¯re alert and can fight. They can work undercover if you ask me. ¡°Come to think of it, do you think Mr. Newman is involved with any shady dealings? Do you want to run checks on Newman Enterprise?¡± ¡°It¡¯s better to know the enemy. Look into it if you have the time. We can catch them in one go if he¡¯s involved with anything shady.¡± Josh shared the thought too. After the exchange, Josh ended the call. He nned to get his men on top of Newman Enterprise once he got home. Chapter 1097 Chapter 1097 Chapter 1097 Serenity had no idea that her man had everything sorted out while she was enjoying a good soak. She came out of the bathroom and found Zachary sitting on the bed. Drawing close, she wrapped her arms around the nape of his neck and pressed him onto the mattress. She was on top of him. ¡°Honey, you¡¯re killing me.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was raspy when he hinted at his beloved wife. With a smile. Serenity brushed her lips along his face and gave him butterfly kisses before rolling away from him. She gave him a kick. ¡°Off to the showers, you go. You smell of cigarettes.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t smoke.¡± ¡°Well, someone did. You got the cigarette smell on your clothes.¡± Zachary took a whiff of his clothes. Nothing smelled like tobo. Nevertheless, it must be true since his wife said so. He went to take a shower and changed into a fresh set of clothes. By the time he came out, Serenity was snoozing away in dreand. Zachary stared at her serene face, feeling envious of her sometimes. Serenity could function normally on meal intake and rest no matter what happened. She would not let anythinge in the way of her sleep and three meals. She was the type to get over things quickly and have an open mind. She would not dwell on issues for too long or be hung up over things. In short, Serenity was an optimist. To her, things would always get better tomorrow. Leaning forward, Zachary nted a kiss on Serenity¡¯s face and tenderly uttered, ¡°Have a sweet dream, honey. Dream of me.¡± Serenity woke up the next morning. She had a great dreamless night, so she did not dream about Zachary. Zachary was making breakfast in the kitchen when she got up. Thinking that Grandma May was not home, Serenity wandered out of the bedroom in her pajamas. She followed the fragrant aroma to the kitchen and hugged Zachary from the back. She stuck her face on Zachary¡¯s back and purred, ¡°Babe.¡± Her seductive voice could make Zachary melt. Zachary turned around to cuddle up and get a morning kiss when he caught sight of Grandma May strolling in from the balcony. She was walking into the kitchen and happened to stumble upon the couple making out. She wanted to pretend she was not there, but Zachary caught her. Hearing Zachary calling his nana, Serenity immediately let go of Zachary and turned to Grandma May with her face flushed scarlet. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Zack, did you see my reading sses? I can¡¯t find them. Oh, I¡¯m getting old. I can¡¯t see without my reading sses.¡± Grandma May turned on her heel to leave while mumbling to herself, ¡°I put them on the coffee table, but I can¡¯t find them now.¡± Zachary and Serenity knew that Grandma May never wear reading sses. ¡°What time did Nanae homest night?¡± Serenity whispered the question only when Grandma May left the room. Zachary¡¯s eyes deepened at the sight of Serenity in her pajamas. His mind flew back to her opening the door in her pajamas when they first got married. ¡°Go back to your room and get changed. You should only wear like this when it¡¯s only us at home. Of course, I won¡¯t object to sexier lingerie, but I prefer you covered up when there¡¯s someone else around.¡± Serenity pinched his arm and spoke in a muted tone, ¡°I thought we were alone at home. You didn¡¯t even tell me that Nana was back. Thank goodness I didn¡¯t do anything lewd.¡± Otherwise, she would be utterly embarrassed. Serenity was quite modest with her pajamas, except for having the tendency of taking off her bra when she slept¡­ With that fact dawning on her, Serenity folded her arms against her chest. ¡°I¡¯m going back to the room to change.¡± She slipped back into the bedroom. Zachary chuckled. There was no need to feel embarrassed around him. Chapter 1098 Chapter 1098 Chapter 1098 Serenity and Zachary were an old married couple now. A whileter, Serenity emerged from the bedroom and watched as Grandma May kept up the act of rummaging for her non¨Cexistence reading sses. Serenity uttered, ¡°Never mind if you can¡¯t find them, Nana. I¡¯ll go with you to get another pair of ssester.¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll stop looking then. I¡¯m getting old. My memory isn¡¯t as good anymore. I remember putting them here, but I can¡¯t find them now. Maybe the sses grew a pair of legs and ran off.¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°Maybe they grew a pair of wings and flew away like a butterfly.¡± Grandma May thought it was a shame. ¡°Oh, I didn¡¯t get to see them flying away like a butterfly.¡± Serenity was amused by the olddy¡¯s antics. ¡°When did youe homest night, Nana?¡± ¡°I was back before you were. I went to bed earlyst night. I don¡¯t know what time you guys came homest night.¡± Although Serenity was skeptical of Grandma May¡¯s answer, she left the conversation at that. After the trio enjoyed breakfast together, Grandma May talked about having a chat with the otherdies in the neighborhood and left. Zachary drove Serenity to the shop. Serenity gave her sister a call while on her way to the shop. ¡°How was business this morning, Liberty?¡± ¡°Good. I was swamped with customers. I was lucky that Mrs. Lane came to help me first thing in the morning. I can hire someone if business is this good every day.¡± Since Mrs. Lane worked for her sister, Liberty could not always rely on Mrs. Lane for help. Liberty did not want to hire anybody in the beginning as she had no idea how the business would turn out. ¡°Your business will always be booming.¡± Serenity believed her sister¡¯s breakfast diner would be a hit the moment her sister decided to go into the food and beverage line. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll talk to you when I¡¯m not so busy in the afternoon.¡± Liberty was so busy that she had no time for a chat with her sister on the phone. ¡°I shouldn¡¯t keep you then. Bring Sonny over for lunchter. I¡¯ll get your favorite food.¡± Liberty happily agreed to the lunch date. She should meet up with her sister to talk about taking their rtives to court anyway. Serenity did not mentionst night¡¯s incident so as not to worry her sister. Liberty dove back into work after hanging up the call. Mrs. Lane was tied up with work too. No one was looking after Sonny, but it was a good thing the boy was well¨Cbehaved. He sat behind the cash register, ying with his toy bricks. Hank came into the diner and looked at the tables full of customers. Some people were enjoying their breakfast while others were on their phones and waiting. It appeared business was thriving. He was dumbstruck and somewhat frustrated. Deep down, Hank wished Liberty would not seed in her business. It would be best if she lost her source of ie like him. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°Sonny.¡± Hank was lost in his thoughts, but he soon snapped out of it. Seeing that his son was sitting alone behind the cash register, he approached the boy. ¡°Dad.¡± Sonny was bored ying by himself, but his mother was busy. Mom said that she had to earn a lot of money to send him to school. He had to be on his best behavior and should not bother Mom for the littlest things. Since Dad was here, Sonny was happier than ever. He put his hands out for Hank to hold him. Staring at his father with his beady eyes, Sonny gleefully uttered, ¡°Dad, are you taking me to the zoo to see the tigers?¡± His father talked about taking him to the zoo to see the tigers the other day, but Sonny chose to go with his aunt. Nevertheless, the little man did not forget what his father said. Hank answered with a grin, ¡°I don¡¯t have time today, son. Can we go another time?¡± Chapter 1099 Chapter 1099 Chapter 1099 Sonny was pretty well¨Cbehaved, but he was less than three years old after all. He had a cheeky side to him. Hank took Sonny to a nearby park the other day, and the yful and active child ran everywhere. Sonny would wander off far away if Hank took his eyes off the boy for one second. It frightened Hank as he thought he had lost his child. Since then, Hank did not want to take his son out anymore. In fact, the first time they went to the park together was because Hank ran out of excuses not to go. Sonny sensibly asked, ¡°Oh. Do you need to work?¡± Hank lied, ¡°Yeah. I need to work and make money.¡± He still had no luck in the job department. Since it appeared Liberty was doing well with her business, it got Hank into thinking of setting up a business with Jessica after the wedding. They could be their own boss. Without needing to take orders from other people, they could work on their own schedule. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Would Zacharye after him if Hank were to set up a business though? Hank¡¯s worst fear was Zachary having it in for him all the way. Worse came to worst, Hank would be an e¨Chailing driver. It would be tough, but at least he would have an ie. It had not slipped Hank¡¯s mind that he still held the roles of a husband and a father. He had the responsibility of bringing home the bacon resting on his shoulder. ¡°Oh.¡± Sonny was rather epting that his father needed to work because Mom had always told him that in the past. It was not old news. The little man knew his father had to go to work every day. Seeing that her ex¨Chusband was here again, Liberty really did not want to give him the time of day¨Cnot like she had time to spare anyway. Hank carried his son to Liberty and said, ¡°Liberty, I haven¡¯t had breakfast. Get me your rmended breakfast set.¡± Before Liberty answered, Mrs. Lane jumped in while serving the other customers. She said, ¡°Mr. Brown, please proceed to pay at the cash register. You can pay, find a seat, and wait for your meal.¡± Hank replied, ¡°I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s father. Do I need to pay? Liberty, we were once husband and wife. What is a breakfast set going to cost you? Can¡¯t you treat me to breakfast?¡± Although Hank still had a bit of savings after renovating the marital home and giving the Yateses financial support, he wanted to scrimp wherever he could since he was without an ie now. Besides, he had always pinched pennies with Liberty. The couple was going halves on expenses thest few months before the divorce. Nimble behind the grill, Liberty said, ¡°Mr. Brown, don¡¯t talk to me about our marriage. I don¡¯t want to fight because Sonny is here, and I have lots of customers too. As Mrs. Lane mentioned, you can pay if you want to support my business. I¡¯ll be happy to make your food. Otherwise, I¡¯ll call the patrolling security to kick you out if you don¡¯t intend to pay.¡± Hank grimaced. ¡°What¡¯re a few bucks to you? Can¡¯t you buy me breakfast?¡± ¡°No. I can¡¯t do that.¡± His expression winced with anger before turning to Sonny. ¡°Look at how petty your mom is, Sonny. She won¡¯t even give me breakfast and expects me to pay.¡± Sonny told him outright, ¡°Dunc pays when hees for breakfast. Aunt Elisa pays too, so you should pay.¡± The only people Mom refused payment were Aunt Ser and Uncle Zack while the rest were expected to foot their bill. Chapter 1100 Chapter 1100 Chapter 1101 Hank admitted that he was a bad man. He wanted to force Liberty to grow disconnected from society with no source of ie and be a faded woman in her early thirties. Compared to many housewives who had suffered the same situation, Liberty was a very brave person. She decisively cut off her rtionship with Hank. She neverpromised just because of her child. Although divorce might be harmful to the child, it would be equally detrimental if they fought all day while remaining together and there would be no peace at home too. It was better to get divorced and raise her son alone. As long as she taught him attentively, she could raise him to be a confident person. Mrs. Lane took a te of eggs and bacon and ced it in front of Hank. Hank was pulled back from his drifting thoughts. His life. now with Jessica was also happy and sweet. Although there were some family conflicts, the husband and wife were still in the break¨Cin period. He would live a better life than with Liberty after they settle down. He ate his breakfast in peace. He fed Sonny some of the food, but Sonny`refused to share the same fork with him. The little boy insisted on having his own fork and speared a slice of bacon by himself. He did not need Hank to feed him. He even thought that the saliva on the fork that his dad used was dirty! ¡°Sonny knows how to feed himself now. What a good boy. Lucas still needs your Aunt Chelsea to feed him.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Hank felt that his son was better than his nephew. After a while, Liberty finished cooking Hank¡¯s mushroom soup and asked Mrs. Lane to serve it. Hank asked for a small bowl and served his son some soup. The father and son ate together with relish. As time passed, the morning rush hour ended and fewer people came in for breakfast. Mrs. Lane and Liberty were finally able to rest. The father and son were still eating. They chewed so slowly as if they did not have teeth. Liberty cleaned up the dishes and wiped the tables. She did not stop Hank from their father¨Cand¨Cson bonding time. There was no need to implicate innocent children in parents¡® grudges. The ss door was pushed open. Liberty and Mrs. Lane instinctively looked at the person who came in. Chapter 1101 3/3 It was Jessica. Mrs. Lane quietly went to get a broom, thinking that she would help Liberty chase the woman out if she dared cause trouble in the shop. Jessica entered and saw that Hank really was at his ex- wife¡¯s shop, eating breakfast together with his son. To Mrs. Lane¡¯s surprise, although Jessica did not look happy, she was not aggressive like thest two times she came here. She did not act as though she had caught the ex¨Ccouple in the act of adultery. ¡°I came to find my husband.¡± Jessica said indifferently to Liberty before going straight to Hank. ¡°Hank.¡± Jessica walked over to Hank and called out to him. Hank, who finally had time to spend with his son, dropped his fork out of shock when he suddenly heard his wife call him. Fortunately, he already finished the food. He had not had such a delicious breakfast for a long time. More urately, he really missed the Hunt sisters¡® amazing cooking. Chapter 1101 Chapter 1101 Chapter 1100 Sonny might not understand that it was a business, but he knew that no one else but Aunt Ser and Uncle Zack were the only exceptions to the paying rule. Hank was dumbstruck for a moment before remarking, ¡°I¡¯m your father, Sonny. How can youpare me with Mr. Lewis? He¡¯s an outsider. Besides, Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t a good man. He¡¯s scary.¡± Sharing the sentiment, Sonny bobbed his head and replied in his childish voice, ¡°Dunc is scary, but he¡¯s not a bad man!¡± Hank did not forget the time he told his son to kick a fuss every time Duncan came looking for Liberty. Refusing to dwell on the same topic, Hank took the hint and talked about breakfast again. His son was stubborn. The little man said that Mr. Lewis was scary, but he was not a bad man. Despite Hank¡¯s efforts to change the boy¡¯s mind, Sonny stuck to his guns about Mr. Lewis. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll pay. Happy now? I feel like it¡¯s all about money for you after the divorce. ¡°You¡¯re so petty. You hold every dime against me. We were once a married couple no matter what.¡± Hank whined while putting his son down to take out his wallet. He pulled out twenty bucks from his wallet and Chapter 1100 handed the money to Liberty. He said, ¡°The breakfast set.¡± Liberty took his money and gave him back his change. 2/4 Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You wanted to split the differences in the expenses and bring money to every conversation we had before we divorced. Now that I have nothing to do with you, have you no shame to freeload off me?¡± Hank choked. Women were such vengeful souls. They went halves for a couple of months. That was all. It had been several months since the divorce, and Liberty was still hung up about the past. ¡°I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s father.¡± ¡°All You Can Eat belongs to me and not Sonny. You¡¯re Sonny¡¯s father, but you¡¯re not mine. So don¡¯t act like I¡¯m your child.¡± Hank retorted, ¡°You¡¯ve changed, Liberty. You¡¯ve be sharp¨Ctongued. I bet you learned it from Serenity. Your sister has married into an affluent family, and these families are all about etiquette and ss. Can she adapt with that temper of hers? You should talk some sense into Serenity. Tell her to be moredylike.¡± Lifting her head, Liberty callously red at Hank. There was not another peep from Hank. 3/4 Serenity and Liberty had been livingrge since Liberty decided to go separate ways with Hank. With Sonny in his arms, Hank turned around and walked away. He spotted an empty table as a customer was leaving. Hank called Mrs. Lane to tidy up the table before taking a seat at the table with his son. Watching as Liberty dove back into work, Hank was brought back to the past. He slowly realized why Liberty changed. No. Liberty did not change¨Cshe merely regained her shrewd and capable self. The years Liberty was most foolish and gullible was when she was his wife. They had known each other for more than a decade. He would be lying if he said he never had feelings for Liberty. Liberty was good to him in the past because she loved him. Hank took her love for granted and thought she was simply useless. Now that she had stopped loving him¡­ She became the intelligent and capable woman she once was. Deep down, Hank was jealous of Liberty¡¯s sess in her career, so he manipted her in the name of love and got her to ditch professional wear for an apron. Liberty¡¯s life as a housewife revolved around her husband and child. Her whole world was caring for the family, from the parents¨Cinw to Sonny. Liberty had no time to go shopping or have a get¨Ctogether with former colleagues. As time went on, her former friends started walking out of her life. She became out of touch with society. The daily bustle of household chores left her no time to dress up, and slowly, Liberty put no thought to her appearance. Chapter 1102 Chapter 1102 Chapter 1102 When Serenity previously lived in his home, she handled all the household chores¡­ ¡°J¨CJessica, l¨CI just came here to have breakfast.¡± Hank picked up the fallen fork and threw it into the trash can under the table. He stood up and exined to Jessica that he was just here for breakfast. Jessica looked at Sonny. Sonny looked back at her. His face took after Liberty, and his eyes were bright and clear. He was a lovely child. Jessica could not bring herself to continue looking at him. Hank quickly exined, ¡°Liberty was very busy earlier, and there was no one to look after Sonny, so I let him sit next to me and looked after him while I ate. Sonny is still my son, after all.¡± He knew that Jessica greatly disliked it when his family brought Sonny up in conversations, and she hated it when he visited Sonny. Jessica took a few deep breaths and suppressed her anger. She did not like her husband and his family alwaysing to visit Sonny and talking about him at all. Her inws always said that Sonny was their precious grandson and he was the only one who could carry on the family lineage. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Hank did not treat his son this well before the divorce, but now, he came over to see Sonny every few days. Jessica was always worried that Hank and Liberty would rekindle their rtionship. Her mother¨C inw mored endlessly for Hank to abandon her and pursue Liberty again. She was baffled too. It had been several months since she started being intimate with Hank, but she was still not pregnant. She was worried that there was something wrong with her health. If she got pregnant, her husband¡¯s family might treat her better. ¡°I¡¯m not trying to me you, Hank, but tell me the next time you want toe here for breakfast. I also haven¡¯t eaten Liberty¡¯s cooking for a long time. In the past, you would often pack it back to the office for me to eat.¡± Liberty suddenly paused at wiping the table, then realization struck her. In the past, Hank often woke upte and said that he did not have time to eat breakfast at home. She packed food for him to take to the office to eat since she was afraid that he would go hungry. Little did she know, he was bringing the food for Jessica to eat. A lot of the credit for Hank sessfully winning over Jessica might be thanks to the breakfast that Liberty and Serenity made. Hank smiled sheepishly. ¡°I¡¯ll call you next time.¡± Then, he reached out to take Jessica¡¯s hand and asked fawningly, ¡°Honey, have you eaten? How about I order some food for you?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve eaten. You¡¯re done eating here, right? Then let¡¯s go. Our house is still being renovated. You should go and have a look too. You can¡¯t let me handle everything.¡± Jessica drew her hand back and turned to leave after speaking. Hank followed at her heels. Jessica walked to his car and waited for him. Hank went over and opened the car door while asking, ¡°You didn¡¯t drive?¡± ¡°You already drove your car. It¡¯ll be a waste of gas if I drive another car. I took a cab here. We¡¯ll go back in your car.¡± Jessica pulled open the door of the passenger seat, sat down, and buckled her seatbelt. When Hank started to drive, she said in a gentle tone, ¡°Hank, if you want to see Sonny, then do it boldly. As long as you tell me, I won¡¯t stop you from visiting your son. There¡¯s no need for you to go behind my back to see him. ¡°In fact, I can apany you when you visit your son. Although I didn¡¯t give birth to Sonny, he¡¯s very cute, and I have a good impression of him. I don¡¯t have a child of my own yet, so I¡¯m willing to apany you as you bond with Sonny, lest he forgets that you¡¯re his father. ¡°As long as Liberty agrees, you can even take Sonny back to our home for a few days so your parents can y with their grandson.¡± Hank was surprised. Why was Jessica so understanding today? Chapter 1103 Chapter 1103 Chapter 1103 Hank gave Jessica a sideways nce and joked, ¡°Jessica, did the sun rise from the west today? ¡°I went to Liberty¡¯s diner early in the morning to have breakfast and apany Sonny. When I saw you, I was afraid that you¡¯d quarrel with me and embarrass me in front of Liberty. I didn¡¯t expect that you¡¯d be willing to let me bring Sonny home to stay for a few days. ¡°You treated Lucas badly, so I thought you hated children.¡± Jessica hated Lucas since he broke her cosmetics. However, he was Chelsea¡¯s son. As long as Chelsea and Hank did not break off their sibling rtionship, they would stille over and meet up. Jessica hated the boy, but the only thing she could do when Lucas came over was to lock their bedroom so that Lucas could not get in. Lucas would make a mess of the ce, and his grandparents would not care. They were happy to let the little brat do whatever he wanted. Jessica knew that Chelsea¡¯s three children were raised by her parents¨Cinw. They treated their three grandchildren. better than they did Sonny. She did not want toment about her parents¨Cinw Chapter 110R spoiling their grandchildren, but whenever after Lucas went home, her mother¨Cinw always told her to clean up the house. She refused. If her mother¨Cinw did not like the mess, she could clean up the house herself. Jessica did not care since it was not her room that was messy. Since Jessica refused, it was her inws who cleaned up in the end. After a few times and they tasted the hassle of cleaning up the house, they no longer allowed Lucas to make a mess when he visited again. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. What Jessica learned after countless fights with her inws was that she had to be more stubborn than they were! As long as she held Hank¡¯s heart and made him stand on her side, the victory was hers. ¡°I don¡¯t hate children. I hate spoiled brats. I don¡¯t dislike cute and sensible children like Sonny. Of course, I don¡¯t like him either because he¡¯s Liberty and your son. Liberty is my love rival.¡± Hank said, ¡°She¡¯s not your love rival now. We¡¯re already divorced.¡± ¡°Neither of you have the intention to remarry, but your family won¡¯t give up. With you, they always compliment Liberty while badmouthing me. Don¡¯t think I don¡¯t know about it because they did it behind my back. I know it all.¡± Hank quickly said, ¡°Jessica, we¡¯re spending the rest of our lives together. As long as our feelings stay strong, it doesn¡¯t matter what my parents say. They just want to please Liberty because she has a rich aunt, and her sister married a rich man. ¡°If Liberty and her sister were still the same as before, I¡¯m sure my mom would¡¯ve gone to them to show off how happy we are. If Serenity hadn¡¯t married Mr. York, we would still have our jobs and a high ie. We have a house, cars, and savings. We¡¯re much better than others.¡± Jessica grumbled, ¡°It¡¯s good that you know. I¡¯m worried that you¡¯ll change your mind about me after listening to your mother¡¯sments.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t.¡± Hank thought about how he had just recently divorced and remarried. He could not divorce again. The cost of divorce was too great! ¡°Sonny is still your flesh and blood. He¡¯s your parents¡® grandson. If you bring him over for a few days once in a while, the home will be livelier with him around. Your parents will be happier too. They might even nitpick me less, and our whole family can be more harmonious.¡± Chapter 1104 Chapter 1104 Chapter 1104 ¡°It¡¯s conducive to our family¡¯s happiness. I¡¯m not a petty person. When all¡¯s said and done, you¡¯re Sonny¡¯s father and have to pay for his child support, so you have to maintain your bond with him. Otherwise, it¡¯ll be a waste if he isn¡¯t close to you despite him growing up with your money. ¡°We¡¯ve been together for so long, but I haven¡¯t gotten pregnant yet. Maybe I¡¯ll be able to conceive if you bring Sonny over. There are many people who remain childless. after years of marriage, but after they adopt a child, they have one of their own after a year or two.¡± Hank was overjoyed to hear this and praised her. ¡°Jessica, I was right about you. You¡¯re a wise and sensible wife and mother.¡± ¡°What woman doesn¡¯t think about making a good life for herself when she marries her husband. I was forced to be a shrew because your family bullied me. Your sister, especially, is a troublemaker. ¡°She stirred up your marriage with Liberty, and now she wants to stir us up too. Hank, I¡¯m not trying to sow discord. I¡¯m telling you the truth. Think about it. Isn¡¯t your sister vile? Every single thing she does is to the detriment of others. ¡°She clearly has arge amount of savings and wants to start a business, but she came to us to borrow more than a Chapter 1:04 hundred grand. Lending money to a person like your sister is like lending meat to a lion. You¡¯ll never get the money back.¡± Jessica criticized Chelsea in front of Hank. She dared say that Liberty alsoined to Hank about Chelsea before, but Hank had sided with his sister after he no longer had feelings for Liberty. After a moment of silence, Hank said, ¡°Chelsea¡­ I told her not toe to our house often unless it¡¯s for the festivities.¡± ¡°She also told you she wanted to add her first two children to our household register and let them live in our new home so it¡¯s more convenient for them to go to Wiltspoon Wood High, right? Hank, don¡¯t be dumb and agree to her request. ¡°It¡¯s easier to invite the devil in than to send him away. If you add the children to our household register, they¡¯ll be a part of our family. They¡¯ll have a stake in the family property in the future.¡± ¡°My sister just wants to move the children under our household register because she wants them to go to a better school. They don¡¯t have a stake in the family property. I¡¯ll only add your name to the title deed. They won¡¯t have a stake if their names aren¡¯t added.¡± Jessica¡¯s face sank. ¡°I don¡¯t care. You can¡¯t agree. They¡¯re Chelsea¡¯s children, not your responsibility. Will you be able to leave them be for the next three years if you agree to her? ¡°Furthermore, if you¡¯re fierce to them, they¡¯ll hate you because they¡¯re not your children. If you don¡¯t care about them, they¡¯ll also hate you. It¡¯s a thankless job¨Cyou¡¯d be stupid to agree.¡± Liberty also refused to agree to this back then. Chelsea recently brought it up to Hank again. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. It was because her eldest daughter would be graduating from elementary school this July. ¡°If you¡¯re just taking care of Sonny, then I have nothing to say. That¡¯s your responsibility as a father. If you leave your son behind and don¡¯t raise him yourself, how can you raise your niece and nephew instead? Are your sister and brother- inw dead?¡± Hank said, ¡°Jessica, it was just a suggestion my sister pitched. I didn¡¯t agree. All right, I¡¯ll reject it no matter what. Don¡¯t worry.¡± ¡°When will you add my name to the title deed?¡± ¡°Tomorrow. We¡¯ll go tomorrow, okay?¡± Hank said in his heart, ¡®It turns out that Jessica is the same as Liberty. They both refused to take care of my nephew and niece who wanted to attend Wiltspoon Wood School.¡¯ Chapter 1105 Chapter 1105 Chapter 1105 Jessica wisely dropped the topic. No matter how terrible Chelsea was, she was still Hank¡¯s sister. Hank could not really cut ties with his sister. In any case, Jessica made her stand. Her purpose was to let Hank and her get closer to Sonny, and to break down Liberty¡¯s defenses. As time passed, Liberty would not object if they wanted to take Sonny out to y. Then, she would be able toplete the task given to her by that unknowndy. She was not being ruthless. Her family¡¯s lives were on the line. All she had to do was bring Sonny to a crowded ce so that the other party had the opportunity to strike. Sonny would be fine as long as he behaved well. If anyone was to me, it was Serenity. That person was targeting Sonny because Serenity offended her. The woman also said that she was just using Sonny as bait to lure Serenity out. The person she wanted to deal with was Serenity. Spring Blossoms always opened earlier than others. Camryn had already opened the store before the morning rush hour. She came here by public transport. After reaching the station and getting off the bus, she counted her steps and was able to reach her store urately. She was familiar with this route after walking down this street for several years, after all. The Newmans had a driver, but he was not someone Camryn could use. She lived like an invisible person in the Newman residence. No one cared about her. Last night, there was a wonderful show staged in the Newman vi. Although Camryn did not show up, she heard everything that happened. When her arrogant sister was taken away by the police, her biased mother wailed and whined, then called her uncle for him to rush back there and then. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Her mother said something about discussing methods of rescuing Carrie. Camryn did not know what Carrie did, but since she was taken away by the police, it meant that she broke thew. Camryn had long felt that Carrie would get into trouble sooner orter. After all, Carrie was spoiled by her parents and raised to be wild and fearless. Chapter 1105 3/3 Sure enough, something happened. The two clerks Camryn hired had not arrived yet. They usually came to the store at around nine o¡¯clock. At that moment, Camryn was the only one in the store. She moved some potted flowers outside to be ced by the entrance. As she was moving them, she stopped and faced a man who walked in. He stood so close to her that she could smell his cologne. It was a stranger. The man had never been to her flower store before. ¡°Are you here to buy flowers, sir?¡± Camryn asked the man following her with a smile. The person standing in front of her was Callum. He could not resisting to meet Camryn in person. Yes, he was stimted by his brother and sister¨Cinw¡¯s show of affection. Callum saw how much Zachary changed after meeting Serenity. He was also envious of them, so he thought of meeting the wife candidate that his nana picked out for him. ¡°What else do you sell in this store besides flowers?¡± Callum asked Camryn. Chapter 1106 Chapter 1106 Chapter 1106 Camryn maintained her smile and answered, ¡°I also sell flowerpots, fertilizers for flowers, potting soil, and so on. What do you need, sir?¡± Callum pursed his lips. The woman in front of him spoke with a constant smile, but she gave off a wispy feeling. However, her words were sharp. ¡°I¡¯ll just take a look.¡± Callum walked past Camryn and entered the store to wander around. After making a round, he turned to find that Camryn was following him not far behind. Why was she following him when she was pretending to be blind? Was she revealing herself? ¡°Sir?¡± Camryn called out to Callum when she did not hear his subtle footsteps anymore. Callum felt uncertain again when he saw her expression. Was she blind or just pretending to be blind? He decided to test her. After looking around the store, his gaze finally locked on a potted cactus. He took the pot and put it on the counter, asking, ¡°I want this one. How much is it?¡± Camryn turned toward the direction of his voice and walked toward him. ¡°Which pot did you choose, sir? Could you tell me where it was originally ced? I¡­ can¡¯t see.¡± Callum stared at herrge eyes. She was not wearing ck sunsses now, so he could see her eyes clearly. Herrge eyes were unfocused. They would have looked beautiful if she was not blind. ¡°You can¡¯t see? Then how were you able to follow me earlier?¡± Camryn fished out the sses case from her pocket, opened it, took out her sunsses, and put them on. Then, she replied, ¡°I have very good hearing and can hear subtle movements. ¡°I followed behind you by listening to the sound of your footsteps.¡± Callum hummed. He had heard before that blind people had good hearing. ¡°I picked one out at random and didn¡¯t see its position. You should be familiar with the flowers in your own store. Can¡¯t you rely on your sense of touch to find out what pot I picked?¡± He did not believe that his nana really picked out a blind woman for him. He had to test her. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°I ced the pot on your checkout counter.¡± Camryn did not say anything. She silently went up and reached out to touch the pot ced on the counter. When she touched it with both hands, her fingers were pricked by the cactus¡¯s thorns. She instinctively withdrew her hand. Callum watched her the entire time and saw her touch the cactus. She really did seem like a blind person who relied on touch. ¡°Sir, you picked out a cactus.¡± Camryn reached out again. This time, she ced her hands on the counter and slowly searched for the pot. After determining the size, she said, ¡°Sir, the cactus you picked is arge one. It¡¯s a little more expensive and costs forty¨Cfive dors.¡± ¡°That¡¯s too expensive. What about the small pot? The kind that can be ced on the desk.¡± ¡°The small ones range from ten to twenty dors. If you want to ce it on your desk, then you can pick out a small pot. The sixteen dor one is a good choice.¡± As she spoke, she slowly walked to a nt rack, felt for a small pot of cactus, and handed it to Callum. Callum¡¯s purpose was to test whether Camryn was truly blind or not. From the test, it seemed that Camryn was indeed blind. Callum immediately stopped his little test. There were plenty of opportunities in the future to test her again, so he simply said, ¡°All right. I¡¯ll take it.¡± Chapter 1107 Chapter 1107 Chapter 1107 Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Callum took out his phone but saw that there were no cashless payment options on the counter. He asked, ¡°Your store doesn¡¯t ept payments via e¨C wallets?¡± Camryn said honestly, ¡°I can¡¯t see, so I didn¡¯t set up cashless payments. I don¡¯t have an e¨Cwallet ount.¡± She took out her phone and showed it to Callum. It was an old¨Cfashioned model that sported a keypad. She could only make phone calls and send messages with the phone. Camryn could not see, so she could only call others by pressing the keypad. She could not use a smartphone either. ¡°I posted a sign at the door saying that the store only epts cash. If you don¡¯t have cash and if my two shop assistants are present, you can pay her via Apple Pay and she¡¯ll pay me back in cash.¡± Callum hummed and took out a one hundred dor bill from his wallet, handing it to Camryn. He did not tell her that it was a hundred¨Cdor bill. Then, he stared at her and watched as she touched the money. After feeling it several times, she went around the counter and opened the drawer. Callum was tall, and he stood close, so his sharp eyes saw that there were many smallpartments in the drawer. Eachpartment 400 contained different denominations of money. Camryn was very skilled in getting the change. She found eighty-four dors for him and said, ¡°Pleasee back again if you need anything else.¡± Callum took the money and counted it. There was no mistake. He stuffed the money back into his wallet and asked, ¡°Do you have a business card? Give me one. I¡¯ll call you the next time I need to buy flowers and you can have someone send them to me. It¡¯ll save me the effort ofing here to get it since I¡¯m very busy.¡± ¡°Yes, sir. Just a moment.¡± Camryn retrieved a business card from a small box on the counter and handed it to Callum. He took the card, looked at it, and slipped it into his pants pocket. Then, he picked up his pot of cactus. ¡°I¡¯ll be leaving now.¡± ¡°Have a nice day, sir.¡± Camryn followed Callum out. Callum twisted his head and nced at her twice but did not say anything. He went to his car parked nearby and soon drove away. As soon as Callum left, Camryn¡¯s two shop assistants arrived. Together with Camryn, they moved out some potted flowers and arranged them. ¡°Why is this cactus here?¡± One of the shop assistants saw the cactus on the counter and asked Camryn while she picked the pot up and put it back in its ce. ¡°A gentleman came earlier to buy a cactus. He said that he wanted to put it on his desk, and that one was toorge, so he got a smaller one instead.¡± Camryn did not mention that Callum was testing her. He did note here to buy flowers. He only bought a small pot of cactus after deliberately using it to test her. Who was he? It seemed he was going after her. She was confident that she had never met him before. He was a little mean. Because of him, she was pricked by the cactus thorns. The shop assistant hummed, and Camryn did not say anything else. She sat back at the register as cleaning and watering the flowers would be done by the assistants. Callum soon returned to York Corporation after leaving the flower store. He got out of the car with his small pot of cactus in one hand and entered the office building. Zachary also just arrived. He sent his wife to the bookstore first, so he came to the office a littleter than usual. ¡°Zachary,¡± Callum called out to him. Chapter 1108 Chapter 1108 Chapter 1108 Zachary hummed in response. When he saw Callum holding a cactus, he asked, ¡°Did you buy that?¡± ¡°Yeah, I went to Spring Blossoms before work.¡± ¡°Spring Blossoms?¡± Zachary found the name a little familiar. He seemed to have heard it from his beloved wife before. Callum did not hide it and said honestly, ¡°It¡¯s Ms. Camryn¡¯s flower store. The name of the store is so unoriginal.¡± Zachary said faintly, ¡°Flowers blossom during spring.¡± Callum choked. ¡°Since you went all the way there, why didn¡¯t you buy more potted nts?¡± Callum pouted and said, ¡°I didn¡¯t go there to buy flowers. I bought this cactus because I had no choice.¡± He could not just leave without buying anything when he caused her to prick her hand with the thorns. ¡°Wouldn¡¯t a ball cactus look nicer if you ce it next to your desktop? Normal cacti have longer thorns. Be careful not to get pricked.¡± Zachary made a few passing remarks and entered the office building. He left his brother behind and went upstairs first. Callum felt that Zachary had guessed what he had done. That was why he said that a ball cactus would be better. A few minutester, Callum sat at his desk and stared at the cactus for a long time. Then, he took out Camryn¡¯s business card from his trouser pocket and called her with his office phone. When Camryn picked up, he asked, ¡°Ms. Newman, do you still remember me?¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Camryn had a good memory and asked with a smile, ¡°Are you the gentleman who just bought the cactus earlier?¡± ¡°Yes, guess you do.¡± Camryn thought in her heart, ¡®You made me prick myself with the cactus. How can I not remember you?¡® However, she maintained her smile Chapter 1109 Chapter 1109 Chapter 1109 Camryn was very surprised to hear that. He was from York Corporation. Was he an employee of York Corporation or someone from the York family? Camryn could not tell. She thought, ¡®I¡¯ll ask Serenity who that number belongs to the next time shees to my store to buy flowers.¡¯ Serenity did not know Callum had begun to approach Camryn. After Zachary sent her to the bookstore, she chatted with Jasmine for a while before her old ssmates she invited over to help weave the handicrafts arrived. Serenity told them to weave a small trinket ording to her instructions. She first had to make sure that their skills were not rusty, then she took a lot of materials from the small storeroom and distributed them to everyone to take home and weave. After sending them off, Serenity turned and was just about to go back into the store when Elisa arrived in her car. She watched Elisa park in front of the bookstore and get out of the car. ¡°Seren.¡± Elisa walked over to Serenity with a smile. ¡°Were you waiting for me?¡± Serenityughed. ¡°I just saw youing as I was sending my ex¨Cssmates out.¡± Elisa looked around and asked, ¡°Were they the ssmates you invited to help weave your crafts?¡± N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°Yeah. I can rx a lot more now and make money with you guys. By the way, we¡¯re going to a banquet tonight.¡± Serenity remembered thest banquet she attended at the Dowling residence. Elisa and she offended Carrie by helping Camryn because they could not stand by and watch Carrie try to ruin her own sister. That spoiled girl had actually hired thugs to block her car and smash it. It was the same thing that Noah did. Although Serenity was fine and Carrie was taken away by the police, her conflict with the Newman family was getting worse. ¡°These two men look familiar.¡± Elisa nced at the bodyguards who were sitting in front of the bookstore. She smiled and asked, ¡°My cousin¨Cinw specially arranged for them to follow you because he¡¯s worried that someone will steal you away, didn¡¯t he?¡± ¡°No, he arranged for them to follow me because he¡¯s worried that I¡¯ll be in danger.¡± Elisa giggled and entered the store with Serenity, saying,¡± You¡¯re the missus of the York family. It¡¯s natural for you to keep a few bodyguards with you. I sometimes go out with a few of them too.¡± However, she went out by herself most of the time. She liked the feeling of freedom that came with being alone. When Jasmine saw Elisa arrive, she took some fruits out from the refrigerator, washed them, arranged them in a fruit bowl, and served them to her friends. ¡°Seren and Jas, I came here to talk to you about the fields. The discussion went well, and the vige chiefs of the various viges have no problem with our proposal. They¡¯ll hold a meeting to ask everyone else¡¯s opinions and discuss their prices. After everyone agrees, we can sign the lease ording to the size of thend.¡± Chapter 1110 Chapter 1110 Chapter 1110 Whether it was Serenity¡¯s hometown or the neighboring viges, the young worked in the cities while only the older generation stayed behind. The elderly could not do much farm work, so the fields were deserted. Since there was someone rich who wanted to rent the fields from them, they would not refuse the opportunity to earn money. Serenity and Jasmine were very pleased to hear this. After Elisa finished updating them about the investment project, she looked at Serenity and hesitated a moment before saying, ¡°That was the good news. Time for the bad news. Seren, I also got someone to inquire about what your rtives were up to while talking about contracting the ¡°Everything they¡¯ve done has been bad news. Just say it, Elisa. I¡¯m prepared to hear whatever it is they¡¯re doing recently. At most, they hauled away the bricks, sand, and gravel and sold them.¡± ¡°The trucks of materials you sent to rebuild the house were still there. They were stacked properly untouched. Your rtives didn¡¯t try removing them or selling them.¡± Serenity said, ¡°It seems my threat against Noah worked.¡± Noah was not his grandparents¡® favorite, but he had his own advantages as the youngest. She told Noah to keep an eye out and not allow the Hunt family to move the materials she had delivered. Noah probably took it as an order because he was terrified of her. ¡°Back then, you said that you¡¯ll be filing awsuit to get your parents¡® house back. Although the two old ones don¡¯t know much about thew, the younger ones do. After they exined, your grandparents realized what awsuit meant. They know that they won¡¯t benefit from awsuit.¡± Elisa continued, ¡°Your grandparents were displeased, so they started spreading rumors in the vige, saying that you and your sister were not their biological granddaughters. Since you¡¯re not biologically rted, you have no right topete for the family property.¡± Jasmine was speechless. Serenity was stunned and then sneered. ¡°They¡¯re going that far? They said I¡¯m not my father¡¯s biological daughter? I take after my father. The only way for Liberty and I not to be their biological grandchildren is if my dad wasn¡¯t their biological son either.¡± ¡°The other vigers also said that you look like your father, and it¡¯s impossible that you¡¯re not his flesh and blood. They also said that your parents had a good rtionship when they were alive. Your mother would never have had an affair behind your father¡¯s back. ¡°So, the final version of the rumor they spread is¨Cyour father wasn¡¯t their biological son. He was adopted. They This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. said they raised him and helped him marry and have children of his own when he grew up, so he owed them. Thus, after your father died, the property he left behind, which was the house, should be given to them, his parents, instead. Jasmine looked at her best friend sympathetically. How unlucky was Serenity to have such vile rtives? They sought nothing but profit. Serenity sneered. ¡°Do they think they can take my parents¡® inheritance by spreading such rumors? That old man probably forgot that out of all of his children, my father took after him the most. The others favor the old woman.¡± The two elderly went too far. Serenity did not even want to call them her grandparents anymore. Old Mr. Hunt was older now. His face was full of wrinkles, and he looked much more different than how he did when he was young. However, Serenity took after her father, and her father took after Old Mr. Hunt. Thus, there was some facial resemnce between Old Mr. Hunt and her. ¡°If he ims that my dad was adopted, then how will he exin their simr physical features? They¡¯re really doing everything they can to twist the facts. They even denied their rtionship with their own son. Do they think they can get away with it because my dad is no longer around?¡± In fact, their spreading these rumors would not affect the oue of thewsuit. Whether Serenity and Liberty were their parents¡® biological children, or whether their father was Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s biological son had no effect on the verdict. Her parents raised her sister and her for so many years. Even if they were not biologically rted, they had a legal adoptive rtionship. Either way, the truth remains they were their parents¡® biological children. The Hunt family spread such rumors because they wanted to use morality to get the sisters to voluntarily give up fighting for the legacy left behind by their parents. Chapter 1111 Chapter 1111 Chapter 1111 ¡°They can try every dirty trick under the sun, but we¡¯re not going to change our minds about taking them to court. We¡¯ll only take what is ours and nothing more,¡± Serenity spoke firmly. She was not a heartless person, but she could show no mercy when it came to her money- hungry rtives. It would take Serenity a lifetime to get over the hurt from her childhood. ¡°Of course. They can talk and make up stories all they want. We¡¯ll take the legal route, so it¡¯s a fair game for them and us.¡± Elisa said, ¡°I have never met anyone more shameless than them. Are you sure your father is their blood family, Seren?¡± ¡°I believe so. My father shared an uncanny resemnce with his old man. They¡¯re just ying favorites¡­. That¡¯s the case with some parents-they dote on the oldest and youngest while the middle child tends to get ignored. ¡°I will request for a DNA test if they put up a defense, saying that my father isn¡¯t their child in court. The DNA test will prove the blood rtions. ¡°If they aren¡¯t willing to do the DNA test, it can only mean that they are lying and have something to hide.¡± With the current medical-technology, a DNA test could determine blood ties between family members. The rumors spread by Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt in town would only make them aughingstock. Everybody came from the same town, and the older generation was still around when Serenity¡¯s father was born. These people would not be blind to the truth. It was the same with Serenity¡¯s mother. The people in Lisa¡¯s hometown might not remember much about her, but they knew that Lisa was adopted. ¡°As you said, they¡¯re spreading rumors to guilt-trip you into thinking that you shouldn¡¯t fight for the property since you¡¯re not rted to them.¡± Elisa and Jasmine shared the same thoughts. The Hunts¡¯ ability to twist the facts was all too familiar to them. ¡°It¡¯s good that you girls are aware of it,¡± Elisa added. ¡°The project we¡¯re investing in is there, but I¡¯ll get someone to be our representative and manage the project. You¡¯ll be the first to know if anything happens.¡± ¡°Thank you, Elisa.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. We¡¯re best friends and cousins. Don¡¯t get all polite with me. We¡¯re closer than that. Are you using a different skincare product? I don¡¯t think it¡¯s the brand I gave you. You smell different.¡± Elisa was familiar with her favorite andmonly used skincare products. She did not notice at first, but she realized it now. Hence why she asked. Elisa was also changing the topic to stop Serenity from thanking her repeatedly. ¡°Yeah. You smell different to me too.¡± Jasmine gleefully asked her best friend, ¡°Are you using the skincare products Mr. York. gave you?¡± ¡°You talk as if Mr. Bucham doesn¡¯t give you anything. Mr. Bucham is more attentive and romantic than my man. You can call mine a blockhead. He can¡¯t seem to take a hint. He needs direct orders. ¡°He gave me a few different collections of skincare products, saying that I can only use the ones he bought me. Isn¡¯t he domineering? He wants to take over every aspect of my life.¡± Elisa and Jasmine answered in unison, ¡°You should be content. He spoils you crazy, and here you are, whining about it. You don¡¯t know how good you get it.¡± Zachary did not know much about romance, nor was he sensual with his words. Nevertheless, anyone could spot his love and concern for Serenity from a mile away. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Elisa knew better than anyone else how much Zachary changed for Serenity. God knew how many women in Wiltspoon were jealous of Serenity. Chapter 1112 Chapter 1112 Chapter 1112 Serenity said with a smile, ¡°I know, I know. I¡¯m the luckiest woman alive. I will count my blessings. I mean, I do count blessings.¡± Her best friends and family were easily paid off by Zachary, and now they always put in the good word for him. Well, Zachary was good to Serenity. ¡°I don¡¯t know what I should get him.¡± Serenity puckered her brows. Her two best friends believed Serenity was tormenting them by showing off her rtionship. It did not affect Jasmine much though as Josh was nice to her too. However, as someone without a partner, Elisa was envious and jealous. ¡°Zachary used to have everything but a wife. Though that¡¯s settled because you¡¯re now married to him. He needs children in his life now. Hurry up and make babies. Get a pair of twins-a girl and a boy.¡± With an adorable kid like Sonny in mind, Elisa uttered, ¡°You can have lots of children if they are as cute and smart as Sonny. Zachary can afford to raise them anyway. ¡°Seren, any good news from you? I must be the first to know if there is. I want to prepare gifts for my future niece or nephew.¡± Jasmine teased her, ¡°Seren¡¯d be telling Mr. York first if she¡¯s pregnant. Don¡¯t fight for the number one spot with Mr. York. He might just be jealous of you and stop Seren from hanging out with you.¡± Elisa remarked in delight, ¡°I was scared of Zachary before, but now he¡¯s scared of me. I¡¯m the older cousin, remember? Hahaha. It makes me happy every time I¡¯m reminded that Zachary is ranked below me in the family.¡± Serenity was blunt. ¡°It¡¯s more like you scare him off.¡± Elisa was speechless. ¡°My Aunt Flo has just finished this month¡¯s visit, so no news of pregnancy. I want a girl and a boy too. Mr. Remy Johnson¡¯s sister-inw is carrying twins, I believe. Her due date is around the corner.¡± Serenity had heard it from Zachary. Zachary reflected envy in his tone when he brought up that Ben and his wife were having twins. Serenity knew very little about the richest family in Anneburg, and the only person she had more information on was Remy. Serenity¡¯s eyes were on Elisa when she was talking. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Not reading much into the situation, Elisa said with a smile, ¡°The renovation on Mr. Johnson¡¯s house has begun. Mr. Johnson often dropped by to check on the progress. I would invite him for tea if I ran into him. I also caught wind that his sister-inw is carrying twins. Apparently, his other sister-inw had twins too, twin boys. ¡°The Johnsons are like the Yorks. Their family seemed to be blessed with only sons.¡± Elisa then remarked, ¡°Seren, you¡¯ll be a hero in the York family if you give birth to a daughter. They have been hoping for a girl in the family for years.¡± While the Johnsons were mostly blessed with sons, only Ben¡¯s generation was without a girl. His father had a sister. The Yorks had not had a girl in the family for generations. Serenity uttered with a grin, ¡°The pressure is always on the women to have sons. It¡¯s different for me-I am under pressure to have a daughter. Nana has been nagging about having a great-granddaughter. She said I could expect a handsome reward for giving birth to a girl.¡± ¡°Grandma May mentioned that the push present for giving birth to a boy is fifty million, and five hundred million for a girl. I heard about it before. All of Grandma May¡¯s daughters-in-w had three sons each: She still hasn¡¯t gotten her wish, and the five hundred million dors remained unimed.¡± Elisa kept her gaze on her cousin as she said this. The message was clear. Chapter 1113 Chapter 1113 Chapter 1113 Serenity was shocked. She was in the wrong business. In fact, why set up her own business? She could just give Zachary children. Her wealth could be built through giving birth. Jasmine gasped in awe; as expected from the wealthy. The push present was a lot of money, and Grandma May was not the only giver. The other family members would be showering with cash gifts too. ¡°Seren, you can be rich by having children,¡± Jasminemented with a smile. Elisa grabbed Jasmine¡¯s hand and caressed the charm bracelet Jasmine got from Mrs. Bucham, uttering, ¡°Jasmine, you don¡¯t need to be envious of Seren. Your future mother-in-w gave you a family heirloom. I thought my eyes deceived me, but now that I had a close examination, I¡¯m certain this is the Buchams¡¯ family heirloom.¡± Jasmine was at a loss for words. ¡°The Buchams¡¯ family heirloom? How can you tell?¡± It never urred to Jasmine that Mrs. Bucham would give her the family heirloom during their first encounter. Did Jasmine pass the test the first time? ¡°My mom took me to get acquainted with thedies of the Bucham family. I always saw Mrs. Bucham with the charm bracelet. The firstdy of the household also has one, and hers is more valuable than Mrs. Bucham¡¯s. ¡°Mrs. Bucham mentioned that this is their family heirloom. It is passed down to the wife of the oldest son. I guess Josh is the oldest son?¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°Julian, the head of the household, is older.¡± ¡°But they don¡¯t have the same mother. They¡¯re just cousins.¡± Jasmine blushed. ¡°That¡¯s a shocker. They are close like brothers. Josh must be the oldest child in his family then.¡± Elisa remarked with a grin, ¡°So you don¡¯t need to be jealous of Seren. Your future inws are on the same level as the Yorks. God, both of you bagged the two greatest families in Wiltspoon.¡± Jasmine looked at Serenity while Serenity met her gaze. It was not like the girls had never seen jewelry before. Jasmine was aware that Mrs. Bucham gave her an expensive gift, but it never crossed her mind that Mrs. Bucham saw Jasmine as her daughter-inw from the first time they met. Josh must have known about it, but he said nothing. The man even urged Jasmine to ept the gift from Mrs. Bucham. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. The guy was conniving as ever. ¡°I¡¯m going to cook now.¡± Jasmine made an excuse to leave so she could give Josh a call to verify whether Elisa was right. She was able to mingle with the upper crust because she had an aunt who married into that circle. Jasmine thought she knew themunity well enough, butpared to Elisa, Jasmine realized there was a more affluent ss above the circle she hung out with. Jasmine did not even know about the Buchams¡¯ family heirloom. Not to mention, Serenity¡¯s first contact with the upper society was through Jasmine. Although Serenity was never into social climbing, she had somehow married into a powerful and wealthy family. She was thedy of the entire household, so there was a lot for Serenity to learn. Compared to Jasmine, the burden on Serenity was heavier. Serenity would have a lot on her te. ¡°I¡¯m not eating here today, Jasmine. No need to cook for me.¡± Elisa added, ¡°I¡¯m leaving. I only came to talk about the progress of our investment project. Cece¡¯s not feeling herself. I want to be there for her.¡± ¡°Is your best friend still feeling down?¡± ¡°She needs time to move on. She had been with the guy for so many years only to be betrayed. Not everybody is like me. It¡¯s not easy to let go of feelings and move on. Even I cried to my brother a few times when I found out that Zachary was married.¡± Serenity felt awkward. She really thought things would work out for Elisa and Mr. York back then. Chapter 1114 Chapter 1114 t never urred to Serenity that Mr. York turned out to be her husband. ¡°Seren, it¡¯s all in the past. I quit daydreaming the moment he saw me as his cousin-inw. He has done a lot for you but never anything for me. He wouldn¡¯t even talk to me in the past.¡± Serenity was not the only reason Elisa could get over Zachary. Elisa was able to tell that Zachary had no feelings for her as he only had eyes for Serenity. ¡°Come to think of it, my best friend shares a simr experience with you except their roles were reversed-she took Zachary¡¯s role. She hid her identity when she was together with her boyfriend, but the guy left her for someone rich. Apparently, the new girl had money and connections, so he didn¡¯t need to work as hard to advance in his career.¡± Serenity remarked, ¡°She should be relieved that she saw the man¡¯s true colors before they got married.¡± ¡°That¡¯s what I told her too.¡± Elisa grabbed her car keys. ¡°I got to go, Seren. Do you have time to draft the contract? If not, I can get my brother¡¯s secretary to do it for us. I can¡¯t be bothered with this. I spent the whole night on the business proposalst time.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll do it.¡± Serenity took on the responsibility since she could not put everything on Elisa¡¯s shoulders. This was an investment project among the three of them. There were certain things she needed to handle herself for the sake of gaining experience. ¡°I¡¯ll pick you up in the evening for the social event.¡± ¡°Sure,¡± Serenity happily answered while walking Elisa out. Once Elisa was gone, she returned to the shop and helped Jasmine with lunch. Not too longter, the students flocked into the shop as school was out. The pair paused making lunch and attended to their trade. Liberty came with Sonny at noon. She operated a breakfast diner, so she only worked half the day. Still, Liberty was tired from waking up early in the morning. ¡°Seren, have you made lunch?¡± Liberty asked, seeing that her sister and Jasmine were upied. ¡°The appetizer is ready. We haven¡¯t had time to make toppings for the dish.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll make them.¡± ?? ? Liberty told her son to entertain himself behind the cash register while she went into the kitchen to cook. After Serenity was done scanning books for two students, and the parent made the payment, Serenity asked, ¡°Where¡¯s Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°She went home to have lunch. Business has been great in thest two days. I¡¯ll put out a sign to hire tomorrow, Seren. I n to employ one person. That way, Mrs. Lane cane back and help you.¡± Liberty replied as she made her way into the kitchen to cook. Serenity had no problems with her sister¡¯s decision to bring someone on board her business. She always believed that her sister would excel in anything she put her mind to. All You Can Eat would be the best restaurant on the street. Her sister would be the prettiest restaurant owner. Liberty served a portion for her son to start eating when the shop mellowed down. She also helped out until all customers had left the store before they had their lunch together. After lunch, Serenity said, ¡°I need to tell you something, Liberty.¡± Rocking Sonny to sleep, Liberty lifted her chin and looked at her sister before uttering with a smile, ¡°Do tell.¡± ¡°I was stopped in the middle of the roadst night, and the car was trashed. ¡°What!¡± Liberty and Jasmine eximed in shock. They asked in unison, ¡°Are you alright?¡±This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Chapter 1115 Chapter 1115 Chapter 1115 Serenity said, ¡°I¡¯m okay. Am I not sitting here all fine? But my car was smashed. Zachary drove me to work this morning.¡± Liberty nervously asked, ¡°Who was it? Was it those people again?¡± She thought it was their rtives again. ¡°No. It¡¯s the Newman family. Well, the sister of the woman I helped before, to be precise. I got into two arguments with her, so she hired a few thugs to get back at me.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t believe it! Where is thew?¡± Liberty reproached. ¡°Did you call the cops?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± Serenity looked at her nephew in her sister¡¯s arms and replied, ¡°I¡¯ll be fine, Liberty. Zachary assigned another two bodyguards to protect me. I¡¯m letting you know now in case you and Sonny might be dragged into this. ¡°How about you move in with us, Liberty? We can look after one another, and it¡¯s safer for all of us.¡± Liberty answered, ¡°I¡¯m renting in quite a safe neighborhood. Since you called the cops, they would¡¯ve learned their lesson and wouldn¡¯t try something again. We¡¯re living in awful society.¡± After much thought, Liberty added, ¡°I cleaned out the storage room in the diner. I n to get bunk beds to put in there and move out of the apartment. Sonny and I can stay in the diner. At least, I can save money on the rental, and it¡¯s safer too.¡± Mr. Lewis hired security guards to patrol the streets. The mother and son often took rides from Serenity to get around. ¡°Don¡¯t get worked up, Liberty. They won¡¯t do anything out in the open. I¡¯m only letting you know so you can keep your eyes peeled for anything. We can go back to the same arrangement as when you were working at Lewis & Co. I can go to your store and pick Sonny up toe to mine. Mrs. Lane can look after Sonny. It¡¯s the best of both worlds since you won¡¯t be distracted.¡± The sisters were past the time when they had nobody. The York and Stone families stood behind them now. Anyone who wanted toy a finger on them had to think twice. Serenity was most afraid that her nephew would be targeted. ¡°Sounds good.¡± Liberty had no objections. She really had no time for her son when things got hectic at the diner. It was not like Liberty could carry Sonny on her back as she worked. The little man was heavy, so the weight would be a toil on her as time went by. Once the sisters had the living arrangement out of the way, Serenity told her sister about their rtives spreading rumors. It did note as a surprise to Liberty. She had guessed that they would not give up on her parents¡¯ inheritance that easily. ¡°I can handle this, Liberty. You should go back and get some rest.¡± Letting out a yawn, Liberty replied, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll leave the e-bike at your shop. I¡¯ll catch a cab with Sonny. I¡¯m so tired. I can barely open my eyes.¡± She was drained and had a child to look after. She knew better than to ride in this condition. Serenity told one of the bodyguards to drive her sister and nephew home for a rest. There was not much activity going on in the afternoon. That night, Serenity went with her aunt to attend an event. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. This time, they were going to the Jeffersons¡¯ home. When the clock struck nine, the arrival of several luxury sedans stirred the guests at the party hosted by the Jeffersons. The person who came was Mr. York! Zachary was here to pick his wife up. Serenity did not want to attend the event with him. He respected her wish, but it was well within his rights to pick her up too. With the elegant Rolls Royce escorted by security vehicles pulling up in the driveway of the Jeffersons¡¯ residence, the host family came out of the house to wee him. ¡°Mr. York.¡± Mr. Jefferson approached with a smile and opened the door for Zachary. Zachary got out of the car holding a bouquet of roses. Onlookers could not take their eyes away from the man. Mr. York looked rather charming with the bouquet in his hand. He made everybody¡¯s heart skip a beat. After stepping his foot out of the car, he swept a nce at everybody before turning to Mr. Jefferson. Before Mr. Jefferson could introduce his family to him, Zachary uttered, ¡°Sorry to bother you, Mr. Jefferson. I¡¯m here to pick my wife up. It¡¯ste.¡± Everybody was lost for words. The party only started at half-past seven. Chapter 1116 Chapter 1116 Chapter 1116 The clock struck nine. There were two more hours before the event ended. Yet, Zachary hade all this way to take his wife home. Mr. Jefferson smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s nice that you dropped by, Mr. York. It¡¯s my mother¡¯s eightieth birthday. Can we have the honor of you joining us at the party?¡± Without replying to Mr. Jefferson, Zachary uttered in a low voice, ¡°Jim.¡± Jim stepped forward with a gift in his hands. Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯m sorry to bother you. This is a little gift for the birthday girl. I wish nothing but happiness and longevity to your mother.¡± Although Zachary did not attend the celebration, he was giving Old Mrs. Jefferson all due respect by preparing a gift. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Jim handed the present to Mr. Jefferson. He epted the gift and thanked Zachary profusely. Standing there, Zachary appeared rather dashing. The bouquet looked brilliant under the night light. Seeing that Zachary had no intentions ofing in, Mr. Jefferson did not insist and told the maid to fetch Serenity. Mr. Jefferson did not have to do so as Zachary¡¯s arrival stirred a hugemotion. Serenity, who was enjoying the food in a corner, was startled. After finding out that Zachary was here, she put down her cutleries and told Elisa that she would check out what was going on. ¡°Zachary.¡± Coming out of the corner, Serenity realized that it was Zachary. She called his name and had to stop herself from running when it dawned on her that she was wearing killer stilettos. Zachary feasted his eyes on her. He had to admit that Serenity was a stunner on those heels. She was like a princess, straight out of a fairy tale with her evening gown, light make- up, and jewelry. He carried a deadpan face in front of Mr. Jefferson and the others. However, the second his gaze fell on Serenity, his tensed facial muscles softened into a smile. Zachary only had eyes for her. ¡°Seren.¡± Carrying the bouquet of roses, Zachary brushed past Mr. Jefferson and headed straight to his princess. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Serenity asked. Zachary presented her with the flowers and uttered tenderly, ¡°I had the flower bought from Spring Blossoms.¡± Serenity would be happy to know that Zachary supported Camryn¡¯s business. With Serenity epting the bouquet, he remarked in a husky voice, ¡°I¡¯m here to take you home.¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity looked at him and said with a smile, ¡°It¡¯s early. It¡¯s only nine o¡¯clock.¡± Zachary stared deeply into her eyes without a word. Serenity blinked. Her promise to him jumped into mind. 1 She was speechless. ¡°I need to let Aunt Audrey and Elisa know.¡± Since he was holding her to her word, Serenity had to make it happen. Affection was written all over his eyes as he held her hand and brought her to the car. Zachary uttered, ¡°We can leave the message with Mr. Jefferson. He¡¯ll ry it to your aunt and cousin.¡± Serenity amusedly and speechlessly stared at him. She whispered a promise in his ear the other day, and now he came early to pick her up at the Jeffersons¡¯ residence. Serenity hoped she would be able to get up in time for work tomorrow. ¡°We¡¯re heading off, Mr. Jefferson. Please let Mrs. Stone know that I¡¯m taking Seren home.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± The person who answered was Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Stone and a fewdies were standing not too far away as they watched the scene unfold. ¡°I got to go, Aunt Audrey.¡± Mrs. Stone showed understanding, nodding her head with a smile. Serenity felt embarrassed. It was a shame that her man was shameless. As the public watched on, he led her into the car and shut the door, stopping the people from prying further. Chapter 1117 Chapter 1117 Chapter 1117 Together with the otherdies, Mrs. Stone stood at the entrance of the Jeffersons¡¯ residence and watched as the familiar Rolls Royce drove away. ¡°Mrs. Stone, Mr. York is really good to your niece. We¡¯re only halfway into the party, and he¡¯s here to take your niece home.¡± Mrs. Stone replied with a smile, ¡°Zachary is good to Seren, so good that us oldies are jealous too.¡± One of thedies next to Mrs. Stone probed, ¡°When are Mr. York and your niece nning for a wedding? It¡¯ll be nice for us to join the celebration.¡± Mrs. Stone curled her lips and remarked, ¡°My older niece, my husband, and I went to Wildridge Manor two days ago. We were there to discuss the wedding. We got a date pick in early fall, so it¡¯s a few months till the wedding. Don¡¯t worry. You are all invited. Don¡¯t forget to bring a gift.¡± Thedies replied with smiles, ¡°Of course.¡± It was an honor to be invited by the York family. No one would pass up on rubbing shoulders with the Yorks. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. In fact, many wanted to ask about Serenity¡¯s rtionship with Tania. Since Serenity always attended events with Mrs. Stone, was it because the mother-inw and daughter-inw did not get along or something else? Still, the consequences of Mrs. Walker¡¯s unwanted opinion shut thesedies up from asking any questions despite their curiosity. It was huge news from Mrs. Stone about the soon-to-be wedding bells. It was certain that Serenity would not be dropped as Mrs. York-she would be thedy of the entire York household. Thesedies had daughters. They needed to remind their daughters not to let things turn sour with Serenity at any social events even if they could not be best friends; likewise for those with daughters- inw. The interaction among the women was to get thetest news for their husbands and to befriend those useful to them. Serenity could imagine the chatter about her early leave from the event. Nevertheless, there was no point crying over spilled milk. She did not need to care what others thought of her. Once in the car, she said, ¡°You came at nine. The party was only halfway through.¡± Zachary gave her a burning look and replied, ¡°I didn¡¯t look at the time. I just felt you had been away for a long time, so I came to pick you up.¡± As if Serenity would believe him. ¡°Did you have enough to eat?¡± Zachary suddenly asked. He knew she was a foodie. Apart from learning to socialize and make friends, Serenity attended social functions to try out all the gourmets in the world. Zachary was brought back to when they first got married. Serenity attended a party with Jasmine at Wiltspoon Hotel and both of them stuffed their faces in a corner. Serenity did not join the bustle when he made his grand entrance. However, Serenity returned home to gossip to him about him. Serenity suspected that he was impotent or swung the other way. Despite his mixed emotions, Zachary could not defend himself. ¡°I could have more.¡± Lowering her head, Serenity took a whiff of the floral scent and asked, ¡°Did you go to Spring Blossoms? Do you think Camryn is really blind or faking it?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t personally go there. I sent someone to buy them for me.¡± Zachary was honest with his answer. ¡°Callum should be the one going there. As her future brother-in- law, I should minimize my interaction with her.¡± Tilting her head, Serenity looked at him and uttered amusedly, ¡°It¡¯s not like I¡¯ll be jealous.¡± ¡°I know. I can¡¯t seem to get you jealous.¡± There was sulkiness in Zachary¡¯s tone. He often got jealous over her whereas he could not spark jealousy in her. Although the couple had reconciled and made progress in their rtionship, Zachary believed Serenity was not madly in love with him. She had always kept a lucid mind. Chapter 1118 Chapter 1118 Chapter 1118 Of course, Zachary would not go crazy for Serenity if he could easily have her swoon over him. Zachary was brought back to what Mrs. Lane said to him. He loved the person Serenity was now. Serenity would not be the same person he fell in love with if she changed. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Such was her personality. ¡°I don¡¯t have a love rival. I¡¯ll be jealous if I have a strong love rival who¡¯s eyeing you. I would worry that someone will steal you away from me. I¡¯m not that great after all.¡± Serenity spoke matter-of-factly-she had no rivals in love. Sure, there were many women who coveted him. However, these women could not even take the first step to confess their feelings to Zachary. It was not like Serenity ever met these women either. There had never been catfights. Her love life had been smooth sailing as she monopolized all of Zachary¡¯s affection. He gave her all of his love and affection. With that in mind, Serenity believed she was a lucky woman. She got someone who loved her! Serenity was so fortunate she could beughing in her sleep being showered with the love of a brilliant man. Zachary dotingly held her and poked fun, ¡°Will you be nervous if I get someone to fight you over me?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you dare. If someone was toe to me and say, ¡®Serenity, Zachary¡¯s mine. How much will it take for you to leave him?¡¯ then I¡¯ll name a price and sell you out. I can live a nice life with the money. Hahaha!¡± The chauffeur and Jim were speechless. It was a dangerous topic to tread on. The chauffeur was tempted to stop the car and take cover, but ultimately, he did not have the guts to do so. Jim wished he was invisible. s, that was not an option. Just when the duo thought their boss would hit the roof, Zachary merely scowled as he would not take his anger out on his wife. In the end, he clutched his grip behind her head and ravished her lips. ¡°No one has ever tried to sell me out. Serenity, don¡¯t you dare do that to me.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°I was only kidding. It takes two to tango. Your admirers won¡¯t be able toe close to you unless you let them. Likewise, you¡¯ll be all over these women if you¡¯re a yboy. ¡°But I trust you. You¡¯re a straight guy who can¡¯t talk to women. Besides, you didn¡¯t fall head over heels for Elisa. You probably think it¡¯s a waste of your time to look at other heiresses.¡± To Serenity, Elisa was a great girl. She believed that Elisa and Zachary were perfect for each other if she was not in the picture. Pinching her cheek, Zachary said tenderly, ¡°My heart can only hold so much. I already have you. I need to fatten you up, so you¡¯ll be stuck in my heart and can¡¯t get out. If you can¡¯t get out, others can¡¯te in. You can only be my wife in this lifetime.¡± Well, Zachary hoped they could find each other in the next life too. Serenity earnestly said, ¡°My heart is not that big to ept another person. You¡¯re a big boy. You¡¯re blocking anyone else from entering.¡± Zacharyughed. She might not love him as he did her but her love was pure like no other. Serenity turned down Shawn¡¯s love. She often brought Shawn up when she had no idea of his feelings as she had only ever seen Shawn as a brother. She stopped talking about Shawn the moment she found out about his feelings and Shawn was now history to the couple. Chapter 1119 Chapter 1119 Chapter 1119 ¡°Where are we going?¡± The couple indulged in a little romance until Serenity realized that they were not en route to Brynfield. ¡°To the vi on the hilltop.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Serenity remarked. Zachary stared at her with a worried look, afraid she might be displeased or not like it. The vi on the hilltop did not leave Serenity the best of memories. Zachary held Serenity captive in the estate for two days after the revtion of his identity. He was afraid to lose her, but it took everybody to talk sense into him before he could let go and allow her to leave. Since the day she set foot out of the vi, Serenity had never returned to the ce. ¡°Seren, we don¡¯t have to go if you don¡¯t like it there. I¡¯ll get the driver to switch course for Brynfield.¡± After a pause, he mumbled under his breath, ¡°Nana is still staying in Brynfield.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°We can go to the vi on the hilltop. No need to switch routes.¡± The guy must think that he might startle Grandma May in Brynfield when letting loose in the bedroom. Serenity did not want to disturb the olddy either. While the incident at the estate did not leave asting trauma on Serenity, she would be brought back to the time upon entering the ce. It was a good thing that all that was in the past. She had to face her fears. Serenity could understand his madness and paranoia from back then since the incident was behind them now. ¡°Okay.¡± Seeing that she did not object to returning to the vi, Zachary let out a sigh of relief. He was morefortable living on the estate as that was his living quarters for a few years. Zachary had only taken residence in Brynfield for several months. ¡°Did Mrs. Newman look for you?¡± Zachary suddenly asked. Mr. Newman rushed back to Wiltspoon when he got word that Carrie was detained. He nearly passed out in anger when he learned the whole thing from his wife. His daughter let the situation get the best of her. He could not believe his daughter woulde up with such a thing. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. It had to be a foolproof n if Carrie wanted to go up against Serenity. At least, Carrie must make sure the evidence would not be traced back to her before making her move. The stunt Carrie pulled was wed, to say the least. She even made personal contact with the thugs. Mrs. Newman knew that her daughter acted recklessly. However, she only found out after the deed was done. It was toote to stop Carrie. It never crossed Mrs. Newman¡¯s mind that Serenity could fight. These thugs did not even leave a scratch on her. Besides, Zachary had hired bodyguards to protect Serenity in the shadows. Had Mrs. Newman known that her daughter would act on impulse, she would have stopped her. It was what it was. Plus, Serenity had proof. Despite Mrs. Newman¡¯s heartache and desperation to save her daughter, she could do nothing. Chapter 1120 Chapter 1120 Chapter 1120 Mrs. Newman would have everything sorted if they were faced with an ordinary person. It was a different story because the person they were targeting was Mrs. York. ¡°No. Did Mr. Newmane looking for you?¡± ¡°Yes. He came with gifts to apologize again, but I wouldn¡¯t meet with him. I told Callum to handle it.¡± Since Callum would have to engage with the Newmans in the near future, he could use the practice by dealing with the matter. Poor Callum. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t be so kind as to forgive Carrie even if Mrs. Newman came to me. To be kind to the enemy is to be cruel to myself. ¡°The feud between Carrie and I is past reconciliation.¡± Serenity took Camryn¡¯s side too, and Carrie had it in for Camryn. The fact that they took different stands determined that they were on opposing sides. ¡°No need to patch things up with her. She¡¯s spoiled and thinks she should get her way in everything. She¡¯ll always hold a grudge even if you forgive her. She¡¯ll get even with you every chance she gets. There¡¯s no point resolving things with someone who doesn¡¯t think they¡¯re wrong.¡± Zachary showed his tyrannical side. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it, Seren. You have me. I won¡¯t let my wife be wronged. No need to be scared or grovel to anyone!¡± Serenity uttered with a smile, ¡°Even if I¡¯m not your wife, I have my principles. Why should I relent when I did nothing wrong? If she can do it to me, she can do the same to anyone. I got thew to punish her. While it might not change her attitude, it could serve as a lesson. to stop her from ying with lives.¡± Putting on a solemn face, Serenity added, ¡°I just hope you don¡¯t think I overstep my boundaries and give you problems.¡± Zachary nibbled on her face. ¡°I don¡¯t think so. I¡¯m happy to clean up after you and take away your problems for a lifetime.¡± ¡°You talk as if I often get myself into trouble.¡± Zachary chuckled. ¡°I need to talk to you about something. My grandparents spread some rumors in my hometown, saying that my dad isn¡¯t their son. Apparently, they found him somewhere and raised him. They said my dad should be grateful that they raised him, but he died before he could repay my grandparents, so they deserved my dad¡¯s inheritance.¡± Zachary asked, ¡°Do you need help to investigate whether your father is their biological son?¡± ¡°I have no doubt my dad is their son. My dad has an uncanny resemnce to Granddad and the only exnation for this is their blood rtion.¡± Serenity never doubted that her father was not a Hunt. ¡°I would believe them if they dragged me to do a DNA test to prove we¡¯re not rted. Otherwise, it¡¯s all a ruse.¡± Zachary fell silent for a moment before uttering, ¡°You can never be too sure about things. Some people might look alike even though they are not rted by blood. Have you read the news? There¡¯s a child who resembles a wealthy man, but they¡¯re not rted at all. ¡°Your father might look like Old Mr. Hunt, but they might not be biologically rted. No parents would be so emotionally detached as your grandparents were from your father and mother. There¡¯s a possibility that they found and raised your father.¡± Serenity remarked, ¡°The townspeople would know if it¡¯s true. Many from the older generation are still around. My sister and I have never heard anything about my dad not being their biological son.¡± Pursing his lips, Zachary said, ¡°You probably don¡¯t know that Ben¡¯s wife, Jane, was adopted by the Murphy family. The Murphies had a daughter and intended the name for their daughter, but their daughter fell sick and left the world. They found Ben¡¯s wife when their daughter passed away. ¡°They brought her home to rece their daughter. Since both girls were of the same age, the townspeople had no idea of the switcheroo. They always thought Ben¡¯s wife was the Murphies¡¯ biological daughter.¡± Serenitymented, ¡°Do you think this is the same case with my dad?¡± Zachary answered, ¡°Yeah. There¡¯s no harm in looking into it. They must be really biased parents if your dad turns out to be their biological son. If he isn¡¯t, then it would exin their attitude.¡± ¡°Why bother with an investigation? Just ask Noah to get here. I¡¯ll do a DNA test with him. The test should still show something since we have the same grandfather.¡± Poor Noah. He was always the first person to pop into Serenity¡¯s head.Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Chapter 1121 Chapter 1121 Chapter 1121 Zachary gave it a thought before saying, ¡°It sounds like a good n. The DNA test is the most direct approach andpelling evidence. ¡°I¡¯ll send someone to bring him here. You can get a DNA test with him. You can m the evidence in their face during the trial unless Noah isn¡¯t their grandson.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Um¡­ What if Noah isn¡¯t their grandson¡­¡± Zachary was speechless. The couple¡¯s minds went nk. In the end, Zachary said, ¡°Just get a DNA test with your grandfather. The old man is not going to cooperate for sure. Here¡¯s where Noah cane into ce. He can get a few strands of hair from your grandfather. The hair follicles have to be intact to do the DNA test.¡± The DNA test did not always have to be done with blood. Noah was the youngest grandson in the Hunt family. Serenity had roughened the boy up a couple of times to the point Noah revered Serenity now. It was a great opportunity to use him. Believing that Zachary¡¯s n was doable, Serenity remarked, ¡°We¡¯ll do it your way. We can get Noah to pluck a few of my granddad¡¯s hair and I¡¯ll use it for the DNA test. We¡¯ll know whether my dad is their child once the result is out.¡± With the couple engaging in chatter, the journey home felt short. They soon arrived at the hilltop vi at Regent Residences. Mrs. Lane came out to open the gate. The sight of Mrs. Lane reminded Serenity that it was time to up Mrs. Lane¡¯s sry. She brought it up to Zachary, and-Zachary replied, ¡°You¡¯re the boss in the house. Whatever you say goes. You can increase Mrs. Lane¡¯s wages without my permission.¡± ¡°She helped my sister a lot, and that¡¯s not the nature of her job. I don¡¯t feelfortable not giving her extra for the ad hoc tasks. We run the household together. Even if you don¡¯t make the decision, I should let you know about it. Thest thing I want is you having no idea what¡¯s going on in the house.¡± ¡°Alright. Increase her wages.¡± Jim turned over to look. Zachary faintly remarked, ¡°Your sry has been adjusted multiple times.¡± Greed was not a good color for Jim. 2-2 Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Jim chuckled. He and Mrs. Lane were the first two people to keep faith with the missus. As a result, they had multiple pay rises and higher bonuses. Serenity said to Jim, ¡°Jim of all trades.¡± Jim was dumbstruck at first but quickly broke into a smile. ¡°Thank you for thepliment and affirmation, Missus.¡± Serenity burst intoughter. The bodyguard got out of the car to open the car door for the couple. Zachary was first to get off, and he extended his hand to help Serenity out of the vehicle. Dressed in an evening gown and killer stilettos, Serenity was careful in getting out. She did not want to end up with a twisted ankle. Besides, she was still holding the bouquet that Zachary gave her. ¡°Sir, Missus.¡± Sam somehow emerged out of nowhere. Together with Mrs. Lane, he respectfully greeted the party. ¡°Sam, Mrs. Lane.¡± Serenity responded with a smile while Zachary said a quick hello and led Serenity into the house. Sam wanted to follow them when Mrs. Lane held him back. She murmured in a low voice,¡± Are you sure you want to be the third wheel?¡± Chapter 1122 Chapter 1122 Chapter 1122 Sam replied, ¡°Thank you for the heads-up, Cecilia. Mr. Zachary wouldn¡¯t be happy if I went 1. ¡°Is the bedroom arranged ording to Mr. Zachary¡¯s instruction?¡± ¡°It¡¯s all done to give the romantic feel. I can guarantee the missus will have a great experience, and they will take their rtionship up a notch.¡± Mrs. Lane replied expectantly, ¡°I hope we¡¯ll hear some good news from the missus soon.¡± Mr. Zachary had been working hard. ¡°You can talk about it with me, but don¡¯t bring this up to the missus. We don¡¯t want her to feel the pressure. Mr. Zachary has not been together with the missus for a long time. They might want to have some alone time before adding a family member.¡± Although Sam looked forward to the missus carrying a child, employees like themselves had no right to rush the couple if they wanted to enjoy a few years without kids. Mrs. Lane said, ¡°I know. I won¡¯t say such a thing in front of the missus. More than anything else, I hope the missus and Mr. Zachary will never stop loving each other.¡± She had witnessed Mr. Zachary falling in love with the missus and been there through the couple¡¯s ups and downs. Mr. Zachary would sometimes pour his feelings out to Mrs. Lane, and she would guide him in the right direction. Sam uttered, ¡°I hope Mr. Zachary and the missus will have their happily-ever-after and end the fights and silent treatments.¡± Brant took over as the butler when Sam had to take time off work. It happened during the time Mr. Zachary came clean about his identity. The missus could not ept the truth, and with the tension running high between the couple, the employees were constantly on tenterhooks. Brant called dozens of times a day to urge Sam toe back and resumed his role as the butler. It brought back a not-so-nice memory for Mrs. Lane. ¡°The York boys do spoil their wives.¡± She wasforted by that thought. Since Sam and Mrs. Lane were whispering outside the house, Serenity heard nothing of the conversation. Zachary led her into the main house, and she was shocked by what was inside. The house was decorated gorgeously and romantically with a rainbow of balloons and flowers adding a pop of color to the ce. There was a red carpet unfurled on the ground, leading a path upstairs. She guessed the end of the red carpet was his bedroom door. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Flower petals were sprinkled next to the carpet, exuding a romantic and beautiful vibe. Apart from the balloons and flowers, there were pictures of her with Zachary in their everyday life. There was one of them shopping for groceries, having dinner together, enjoying the garden on the swing, etc. In short, the photos captured their moments together as a couple. Serenity had no idea when these pictures were printed, much less when they were taken. Nevertheless, the romantic setting and pictures of them together took her down memoryne. Of all the good and the bad they went through as a couple, Serenity remembered the good while Zachary was willing to shoulder the bad for her. Keeping an eye on her expression, Zachary could tell his n was a sess when he saw the joy and awe on her face. He had cracked his head to think of something romantic and asked help from everybody to set the ce up. His wife was impressed. Josh was not the only guy who knew how to set the mood. He could too. Just as Josh wanted Jasmine to be happy, Zachary wished the same for Serenity. Serenity did not have to envy Jasmine. ¡°Zachary.¡± Serenity held his hands tight and gleefully uttered, ¡°It¡¯s beautiful. The ce is so beautiful. I feel so loved.¡± He put a lot of heart into it. It was hard for a man like him to set up such a romantic scene for her. ¡°I want to take pictures. I want to take a video to capture the moment. I¡¯ll have something to look back on every time I watch the video.¡± She wanted to save the wonderful setting Zachary made especially for her. It would always remain a sweet memory when they turned old and gray. Chapter 1123 Chapter 1123 Chapter 1123 ¡°Sure,¡± Zachary dotingly responded. Serenity put the bouquet on the coffee table and pulled out her phone to capture the romance in the room, preserving Zachary¡¯s love for her in a digital form. After Serenity took photos and videos, the couple took a few more together. Serenity was over the moon. ¡°Take a look upstairs.¡± Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Did you decorate the room like this too? It must be beautiful and romantic. I¡¯m so d.¡± Zachary grinned without a word as he took her by the hand upstairs. Serenity was right. The red carpet extended to their bedroom door. Pushing the bedroom door open, Serenity could not stop herself from smiling. The setup in the room was no different from downstairs, but the lovenguage was written in the air. A ss of wine in this sensual room would push the mes of desire to an all- time high. It was a night of pleasure and intimacy. With the sun rising in the east, the break of dawn took over the night and weed a new day. Serenity was not able to wake up at her usual time. She was lost in a sweet dream. As always, the man beside her opened his eyes and stared at Serenity¡¯s serene and content face. His eyes softened as he scanned every bit of her facial features and leaned in for a peck on her lips. ¡°Good morning, Seren,¡± Zachary whispered in her ear after the kiss. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Serenity was deep in her sleep to hear the morning greeting. ¡°I went overboardst night, Seren. Carry on with your sleep. I¡¯m going to work and make money to support you.¡± Zachary murmured in her ear and smooched her cheeks. It took a while before he could convince himself to get up. Half an hourter, a certain somebody strutted down the stairs, feeling rather fresh. Sam waited on thending. Seeing that Zachary wasing down, he courteously informed, ¡°Breakfast is ready, Mr. Zachary.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary ran his eyes around the room d¨¦cor andmented, ¡°The ce exudes a different kind of beauty during the day.¡± Sam said with a grin, ¡°You decorated the ce, especially for the missus. It¡¯s beautiful whether during the night or day. The missus will be very happy.¡± Having enjoyed a great night, Zachary had a big smile on his face. He remarked in delight,¡± Seren was happy about it.¡± Setting a romantic mood could really make his wife¡¯s day. Zachary intended to spice up his romance game so that Seren could experience joy every day. Zachary sat down at the dining hall and told Sam, ¡°Seren is resting right now. Don¡¯t let anyone disturb her. Mrs. Lane can make her something to eat when she wakes up. Tell her I¡¯ll make an arrangement for what we discussedst night.¡± Sam gleefully replied, ¡°Understood.¡± Judging by Mr. Zachary¡¯s cheerfulness, Sam knew the missus was more than happy aboutst night. The employees were delighted too. Their callous and emotionless boss picked up on romancing. Old Mrs. York no longer needed to worry about Mr. Zachary¡¯s marriage. Chapter 1124 Chapter 1124 Chapter 1124 Well, Grandma May was upied getting her other grandsons to ditch the singlehood. Inspired by her first sessful matchmaking, the olddy wanted to keep the momentum going and put her other grandsons, who were at the right age to marry but stayed single anyway, on the market. All that was left to do then was to wait for the birth of her great-granddaughter. A reward of five hundred million dors would be given to the one who would give her a great- granddaughter! Zachary had a moment to himself as he finished his breakfast and read the paper for fifteen minutes on the sofa in the living room. He then got up and walked out of the house to get to work. Prior to leaving, he reminded Mrs. Lane to take good care of Serenity. By the worried look on his face, Mrs. Lane was tempted to suggest he brought Serenity to work with him. ¡°Jim.¡± Before getting into the car, Zachary suddenly told Jim, ¡°You don¡¯t have to follow me today. I need you to do something for me. Go to the Hunts¡¯ hometown and find Noah. You are free to coerce or threaten him, but he needs to pluck several strands of Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair with follicles. He can¡¯t cut the old man¡¯s hair with scissors. Make sure to transport Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair in a ziplock bag.¡± Jim respectfully answered, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll get going now.¡± Zachary then got into the car and left the vi on the hilltop under the escort of his security detail. Halfway to the office, Zachary recalled during their intimate moment, Serenity talked about taking Sonny to the bookstore so Liberty could focus on the business. He instructed the chauffeur, ¡°Go to All You Can Eat. It¡¯s on the street leading up to Lewis & Co.¡± Since Zachary and Duncan were best friends, the chauffeur often ferried his boss to Lewis & Co. Hearing that it was on the same street, the chauffeur immediately rerouted. Liberty had put out a hiring yesterday, so a lot of people had inquired about the job since yesterday afternoon. While she had only intended to hire one person, Liberty finally decided upon two middle- aged women who appeared rather honest and good with their hands. They were the hardworking kind who would not quit halfway as they had a family to feed. The two waitresses were starting work today. It was past the morning rush hour when Zachary arrived at the breakfast diner. Still, the diner was packed with people. There wereborers who got off work from a graveyard shift. Hearing that a new breakfast ce had opened, everybody came to try the tasty and new variety of food. Liberty and the two waitresses barely had time to pause for a break. Sonny was sitting behind the cash register, slumping against the chair asleep. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. It was hard for kids tost through the morning after waking up early. Having no time to look after her son, Liberty simply draped a jacket over Sonny. Zachary walked into the scene, feeling bad for his nephew. Drawing close, Zachary picked Sonny up from the chair and told his sister-inw. ¡°I¡¯m taking Sonny with me, Liberty.¡± Liberty stopped working for a second and approached Zachary with a question, ¡°Is it convenient for you? He can rest here if you¡¯re busy. I identally woke him as I was getting up this morning. He stayed awake with me for several hours until now. He¡¯s exhausted. ¡°Where¡¯s Seren?¡± ¡°She¡¯s still asleep. It¡¯s okay. I¡¯ll take Sonny to the office. He can sleep in my private resting room. Sonny¡¯s a well-behaved boy. He won¡¯t bother me.¡± Even if Sonny was awake, Zachary had a big enough office for him to run around and y. As someone who had been there, Liberty got the message when she heard her sister was still asleep. She wanted to remind the couple to show some restraint, but it was not her ce to tell Zachary off. Liberty uttered with a smile, ¡°Alright then. Thank you.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. I¡¯m really fond of Sonny.¡± ¡°Sonny takes long naps, so he¡¯ll probably be up in the afternoon. Call me when he wakes up. I¡¯lle and pick him up.¡± Even if Zachary took her son away, Sonny would not be much of a bother as he would be asleep for a while. Hence, Liberty feltfortable leaving Sonny in Zachary¡¯s care. No sooner had Zachary taken Sonny away than Hank entered the breakfast diner with Jessica. Chapter 1125 Chapter 1125 Chapter 1125 Jessica started looking around the ce the moment she set foot in the diner. She was disappointed that Sonny was not around, but she did not show it on her face. It was the two servers¡® first day, so they had no idea about Liberty¡¯s rtionship with Hank. One of them came forth with a smile on her face, asking the couple what they would like to eat. Hank brought Jessica to an empty table to sit down. ¡°Jessica, wifey, what would you like to eat?¡± Before they went out, Jessica had demanded Hank to specifically call her ¡°wifey¡± in Liberty¡¯s presence. Even though Liberty had no feelings for Hank, Jessica could not stop herself from seeing Liberty as her love rival. It was probably because Jessica stole Hank from Liberty. Hence, she felt insecure that Hank would be taken by another. ¡°I¡¯ll have whatever you¡¯re having.¡± Hank told the waitress, ¡°Two breakfast sets.¡± She took down their order and asked the couple to wait while she brought the food to them. Most of the food was prepared in advance, except the main dishes which were made to order. ¡°Why don¡¯t I see Sonny?¡± Jessica asked in a seemingly casual manner. Hank did not know the answer to her question. By right, Sonny should be in the diner. Did Serenity take him? ¡°I¡¯ll ask Liberty.¡± Since Jessica had agreed to let the Browns visit Sonny and even allow Sonny to have short stays at the Browns¡® residence, Hank could finally talk about his son with his wife. Rising to his feet, Hank walked up to Liberty, who was busy in the kitchen, and asked her through the window between the dining area and kitchen, ¡°Where¡¯s my son, Liberty?¡± Liberty took a nce at him and went back to work. It took a while before she faintly answered. By then, Hank nearly threw a fit from waiting. Sonny¡¯s asleep.¡± ¡°Asleep? Where?¡± Liberty kept to herself. Hank went on to say, ¡°Your business is doing good, and you¡¯re busy. It¡¯s not safe to have Sonny here. What if he runs outside, and you don¡¯t realize it? Someone might just kidnap him. What are you going to do about it then? ¡°My son is such a cute boy. He fits the profile of what these kidnappers are after. I¡¯m going to take Sonny with me so my parents can take care of him for a while.¡± Liberty took a fleeting nce at Jessica who was helping herself to breakfast. Getting the message, Hank spoke in hushed tones, ¡°Jessica said yes to it. She¡¯s happy to have a child in the house. It will make the ce livelier, and my parents won¡¯t constantly fight with Jessica.¡± Liberty wanted to say no. Still, she had to consider the terms of the divorce. At the end of the day, Hank was Sonny¡¯s father. Liberty said, ¡°You can take him to stay with you if he agrees. You can¡¯t make him if he¡¯s not keen on it.¡± She left the choice in her son¡¯s hands. Sonny was more than willing to have outings with his father, but he did not want to live somewhere with his mother out of his sight. ¡°Of course, he¡¯s keen. It¡¯s his home too. I am his father. My parents are his grandparents. My parents are used to looking after children. They¡¯re bored out of their minds now that they have no little kids to take care of. They have been nagging me to look after Sonny. N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. You have Sonny¡¯s custody and I won¡¯t fight for it. I¡¯m just trying to share the burden. It¡¯s all for Sonny¡¯s safety.¡± Hank then added, ¡°Where is Sonny sleeping? I¡¯ll take him home after breakfast. It¡¯s none of my business that you want to start a business, set up an eatery, or to make money, but it pains me to see my son getting up at the crack of dawn because of you.¡± Chapter 1126 Chapter 1126 Chapter 1126 ¡°Sonny went with his uncle.¡± ¡°Mr. York? Isn¡¯t Sonny asleep?¡± Liberty faintly remarked, ¡°He¡¯s asleep. Zachary carried him away in that state. You can pick him up at York Corporation if you want to.¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°If Sonny doesn¡¯t want to stay at your ce for a few days, you can visit him at Seren¡¯s bookshop. It would be hard for me to find the time to look after him since I¡¯m busy, but he¡¯ll be spending a lot of time at Seren¡¯s bookshop. Furrowing his brows, Hank said nothing more. Given a choice, Sonny would rather pick his aunt over his father. Hank had once told his son that he would take him to the zoo. The little guy was happy, but he left with his aunt the next day anyway. Sonny was willing to give up on the trip to the ZOO. He knew where he stood. Hank had not been a good father. Although his son called him dad, they were not very close. He returned to his seat at the table. Jessica asked, ¡°You look upset. What happened? Did you get into another row with her? Is Sonny around?¡± ¡°Zachary took Sonny away. She said that we can¡¯t make Sonny stay with us if he doesn¡¯t want to. I can already tell that Sonny won¡¯t want to stay with us. My parents have never taken care of Sonny before. I used to be busy with work, so I hadn¡¯t spent much time with Sonny. I doubt he¡¯ll want to live with us for a while.¡± After a brief silence, Hank added, ¡°We can visit when we miss the boy.¡± Although freaking out inside, Jessica remained calm on the surface and spoke understandingly, ¡°It takes time to bond even for fathers and sons. You should visit him often when you have the time. Take him out, bring him to nice restaurants, and have fun with him at the yground. He¡¯ll learn to trust you as his father and be willing to stay with you.¡± Hank answered, ¡°Yeah. There¡¯s no rush. We can take things slow.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you tell Liberty that we¡¯ll take Sonny to the zoo this weekend?¡± N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. ¡°Sounds good. Sonny was jumping with joy when I said I would take him to the zoo.¡± Hank had no idea what Jessica was up to. He thought Jessica wanted to get along with Sonny and eventually have a child of her own. He epted Jessica¡¯s suggestion wholeheartedly. Zachary carried the little man into the office, earning surprised looks from York Corporation¡¯s employees. When did their CEO have a son? Was he not married for merely six months? How did a six¨Cmonth¨Cold marriage produce a two- or three¨Cyear¨Cold toddler? Zachary had always had a shine to his nephew. Without the help of his bodyguards, Zachary carried Sonny out of the car and into the office building. Everybody was shocked by the love and care he had for Sonny. No one thought it was strange that their CEO doted on his wife because the York boys were well¨C known uxorious husbands. They thought their aloof CEO would not have the patience to care for a child. It never urred to anyone that he had great potential to be a stay¨Cat¨Chome dad. Once Zachary carried Sonny into the lift, the two receptionists started their exchange in a low voice. ¡°Is that the boss¡¯s illegitimate child?¡± The receptionist nced at her colleague and said, ¡°Don¡¯t you know that his wife has a sister?¡± ¡°I do. Boss¡¯s wife lost her parents early on in life. She has been living with her sister for more than a decade¨Ceverybody knows that. Oh, I get it. The child is the nephew of the boss¡¯s wife. I heard her sister divorced her husband and has custody of the child. The son is about two to three years old.¡± Chapter 1127 Chapter 1127 Chapter 1127 Seeing the light, the receptionist uttered with a smile, ¡°That sounds about right. The child must be his wife¡¯s nephew. I can¡¯t believe the CEO would bring his nephew to the office. People would think he was carrying his own son by the gentle way he held the child.¡± ¡°He might be dying to be a father¡­ Maybe the missus is pregnant, and he is doing at practice run on caring for a child. He probably wants to be a very involved father.¡± The other receptionist was shocked. Was it possible? Deep in his sleep, Sonny did not wake up during the car ride and the walk to the office. His uncle finally laid him down on the bed in the private resting room. Zachary bent over to take off Sonny¡¯s shoes and socks before removing his jacket. He also tucked the boy under the nket. The sight of the adorable child only made Zachary¡¯s heart melt. He leaned forward to kiss Sonny on the cheek. ¡°Sonny, I want to have a little boy or little girl with your aunt every time I look at you.¡± The boy a little shy of three years of age was sound asleep, so of course he was not going to respond to Zachary. Zachary stayed for a while before leaving the private resting room. He had juste out. of the room when Mr. Chaplin knocked on the door and entered. ¡°Mr. Lewis is here, sir.¡°. ¡°Okay.¡± It then urred to Zachary that he was meeting Duncan to talk about a partnership. He gestured for Mr. Chaplin to let Duncan in. Duncan tookrge strides into the office, asking with a smile, ¡°I heard you brought a child to the office, Zachary. Is it your illegitimate child? I can¡¯t believe you. We¡¯ve been buddies for many years, and you never bother to tell me that you secretly had a child.¡± Although tempted to throw something at Duncan, Zachary could not find an item of good weight. He peevishly snapped back, ¡°He¡¯s not my illegitimate child. He has parents, you know. But someone likes him a lot and wants to be his dad.¡± ¡°Sonny?¡± Without a second thought, Duncan named Sonny. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Something did not feel right. Duncan was too quick to answer when Zachary said someone wanted to be Sonny¡¯s dad¨Cas if he confessed. Sure, Duncan was fond of Sonny and wished Sonny was his son. However, he did not like Liberty that way. ¡°Who else apart from Sonny? Other people may not know me, but how could you not? It would have rocked themunity if I had an illegitimate child of this age.¡± Zachary drew close and asked Duncan to sit down on the sofa. Instead of taking a seat, Duncan made his way to the private resting room. He asked, ¡°Is Sonny ying in the private resting area? Is he asleep? No wonder I couldn¡¯t see him when I was passing by All You Can Eat.¡± ¡°He¡¯s asleep. Don¡¯t wake him.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t wake him. I just want to kiss his little face. I¡¯ve been dying to nibble on his face. How can he be so cute?¡± Zachary let Duncan enter the quiet zone, and thetter took his time in the private resting room. Duncan came out with tenderness running along his coarse facial lines. Judging by his content face, he probably thered Sonny¡¯s face with saliva. ¡°Sonny takes after my sister¨Cinw.¡± Zachary¡¯sment came out of nowhere. Duncan walked up to the sofa and sat down, replying, ¡°He does.¡± There was no way he could kiss those puffy cheeks if the boy resembled Hank. Seeing that the message went over his best friend¡¯s head, Zachary smiled without borating further. ¡°Why did you bring Sonny to the office?¡± ¡°Seren said that she would be taking Sonny to her shop, but she got upte today, so I brought him here. He¡¯s asleep anyway. He won¡¯t bother me.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Duncan did not see a problem with that. ¡°Do you want anything to drink?¡± ¡°Just a ss of water please.¡± Duncan said, but he got up and poured himself a drink anyway. He even told Zachary off,¡± You never attend to me and Josh when wee around. We have to do things ourselves.¡± ¡°Only you two get to make yourselves at home here.¡° Chapter 1128 Chapter 1128 Chapter 1128 Duncan was without a word. Since Duncan¡¯s purpose of being here was to talk about partnership with his best friend, the pair soon got right into it. Once the duo ironed out all the kinks, Duncan was ready to leave and said, ¡°I¡¯m going to check on Sonny again. I¡¯ll take him out for some fun if he¡¯s awake.¡± ¡°You take him out? I bet he will cry his eyes out while you panic and rush to send him back.¡± Duncan choked. That was right. Sonny did not take kindly to his hugs. Nevertheless, Duncan went into the private resting room once again. It did not take him long to yell from inside, ¡°Zachary! Zachary! Hurry!¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± His outcry gave Zachary a scare. Zachary jumped to his feet and raced into the private resting room. ¡°Sonny wet the bed. Look at the pool of pee on the bed sheet,¡± Duncan told his best friend as he pointed at the child on the bed. Zachary was lost for words. He drew close and removed his jacket before picking Sonny up. Zachary then took off Sonny¡¯s wet pants and held the boy with the jacket over him. Thest thing he wanted was for Sonny to catch a cold. Since Sonny had been asleep for a while now, he opened his eyes when Zachary was removing his pants. Seeing that it was Zachary, Sonny curled his lips and mewed, ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± ¡°Oh, Sonny¡¯s awake.¡± Sonny beamed. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Turning on his heel, Zachary carried Sonny out of the private resting room and lifted the covers off Sonny while telling his friend who barged into the room, ¡°Duncan, can you remove the bedsheet?¡± ¡°Sonny peed on it¡­¡± ¡°What? Can¡¯t take the stench?¡± Duncan was speechless. The smell did not bother him. It was simply his first encounter with a tiny human wetting a bed. Duncan removed the bedsheet. Recalling that his best friend had a washing machine in the private resting room, Duncan put the soiled sheets and pants into the washing machine. He came out of the private resting room to find Sonny sitting on the sofa. The boy was still using his uncle¡¯s jacket as pants. ¡°Duncan, go and shop for some clothes for Sonny. He needs pants.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Duncan rushed out to buy Sonny some clothes. He worked fast and returned with a dozen selections of clothes from a single store that sold children¡¯s wear. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯m back with the clothes. I don¡¯t know if they are the right size.¡± Duncan walked into the office with a huge bag of clothes and uttered, ¡°The quality seems good, so I bought them. Let¡¯s see if they fit Sonny. I can go get the right size if the clothes don¡¯t fit.¡± Since this was his first¨Ctime clothes shopping for the boy, he had no idea the size he should get. Zachary took the bag of clothes. ¡°A couple of sets would do. Why did you get a dozen? Huh? Why is there a dress?¡± Duncan replied, puzzled, ¡°Is that a dress? I might have grabbed it by ident.¡± Seeing his best friend pull out a long¨Csleeved dress from the bag, Duncan turned red in the face. ¡°Uncle Zack, this looks good.¡± With a pretty dress catching his eye, Sonny reached out to grab it. Zachary uttered, ¡°This is a dress, Sonny. It¡¯s for girls. You¡¯re a boy, Sonny. You can¡¯t wear dresses.¡± Chapter 1129 Chapter 1129 Chapter 1129 With his dark eyes sparkling, Sonny asked, ¡°Why can¡¯t boys wear dresses?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°That¡¯s because dresses are for girls.¡± Sonny turned his attention to Duncan. Zachary grabbed a pair of pants and picked Sonny up to help him into the pants. He said, ¡± That¡¯s because boys have to do a lot of heavy lifting, and doing the work in a dress makes it quite difficult.¡± ¡°Why are boys doing the heavy lifting?¡± ¡°Boys have to do the hard work, so the girls don¡¯t have to. We leave the lighter load to your mom and your aunt.¡± Somewhat getting the idea, Sonny answered, ¡°I¡¯ll do the heavy lifting when I grow up, so Mom and Aunt Ser get less work.¡± Zachary remarked with a smile, ¡°Good boy, Sonny.¡± Duncan had no words. Ring, ring, ring¡­. The inte phone was ringing. Putting Sonny down, Zachary got up to take the call. He quickly put down the phone and told Sonny, ¡°Your mom¡¯s here, Sonny.¡± ¡°Mom¡¯s here.¡± Hearing that his mother had arrived, the little guy immediately stuffed the dress in the bag and searched for his wet pants. Since he could not locate them, Sonny asked, ¡°Uncle Zack, where are my other pants?¡± ¡°They were wet, so I dumped them in the washing machine.¡± The person who replied was Duncan. Sonny did not respond as he put all the muscle work into carrying the big bag of clothes out. The boy also urged Zachary, ¡°Uncle Zack, don¡¯t forget to return the pants once they are clean and dry.¡± Zachary answered with a smile, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll return the pants to you. Your size doesn¡¯t fit me anyway.¡± The little guy even remembered to bring home his soiled pants. ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t take the dress. Dunc will return it. It¡¯s not like you can wear the dress.¡± Stopping in his tracks, Sonny turned back and responded, ¡°I want to keep the dress, Uncle Zack. The dress is for the little sister Aunt Ser gives birth to.¡± Zacharyughed in greater delight at thement. He approached Sonny and picked the boy up. ¡°Do you think your aunt will have a girl?¡± ¡°My mom said so.¡± Zachary gleefully remarked, ¡°That¡¯s right. That¡¯s right. Your aunt will give you a pretty little sister to y with. Okay, we don¡¯t have to return the dress. You can keep it as a gift to your little sister.¡± Sonny solemnly nodded his head. He was going to buy lots of dresses for his little sister once Aunt Ser popped one out. ¡°Mr. York, the meeting is starting.¡± Mr. Chaplin knocked on the office door and reminded Zachary of the time. Zachary wanted to go with Sonny to the lobby, but after a quick look at the time, he handed Sonny to Duncan. ¡°Sonny, can Dunc take you downstairs to your mom? I want to go to a meeting. I need to make lots of money to get form milk for your little sister.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Sonny was not keen on letting Duncan hold him, but he was a sensible boy. He knew that Uncle Zack had to make money for his little sister, so he should not bother his uncle. Form milk was expensive. Sonny often went with his mother to get form milk, and he saw Mom handing over a lot of money so he could have the tasty milk. Duncan carried Sonny, together with the bag of new clothes, to take the lift down. Liberty was waiting in the VIP lounge in the lobby. She would usually close the business near noon, but since Zachary took Sonny to the office, she was worried Sonny might wake up and pester Zachary. Hence, she closed the shop at ten o¡¯clock. Minutester, she saw Duncan carrying her son out of the lift through the ss door. Jumping to her feet, Liberty took quick paces out of the VIP lounge and cried, ¡°Sonny.¡± The duo looked over.N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. With Sonny fighting to get to the ground, Duncan bent over and put him down. He watched as the boy ran toward Liberty. ¡°Mom.¡± Chapter 1130 Chapter 1130 Chapter 1130 Getting on bended knee, Liberty asked her son, ¡°Were you a good boy? Did you bother your uncle?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve been a good boy¡­ But I wet my pants, Mom.¡± Sonny looked embarrassed when he mentioned this. Liberty inquired, ¡°Were you sitting anywhere?¡± ¡°Uncle¡¯s bed.¡± Liberty was speechless. ¡°Dunc bought me a lot of new clothes and a dress. We can keep the dress for Aunt Ser¡¯s baby girl!.¡± Liberty had no words. Duncan shopped for clothes for her son, and it included a dress too. How dense was the guy to buy a dress for a boy? Not the least bit awkward, Duncan drew close and handed the bag of clothes to Liberty. He then scooped Sonny up and told Liberty, ¡°Come on. I¡¯ll walk you two out.¡± Liberty kept up the pace. ¡°I took my e¨Cbike. ¡°Mr. Lewis, how much were the clothes? Let me pay you back.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. They aren¡¯t worth much.¡± ¡°I should, though.¡± Liberty insisted on returning the money to him. Duncan hesitated for a moment before uttering, ¡°I spent almost two thousand bucks. You can give me a thousand five hundred.¡± Lowering her gaze at the bag of clothes, Liberty assumed Duncan was not a bargain hunter. It made sense that the whole bag would cost nearly two thousand dors if he shopped at the new arrivals section. She opened her purse and pulled out one thousand five hundred dors to hand to Duncan. She said, ¡°This is for the clothes, Mr. Lewis.¡± With one hand holding Sonny, Duncan took the money with his free hand and stuffed it in his pocket without counting. The pair took strides out of the office building until Duncan asked, ¡°Are you sure you need a lift?¡± don¡¯t ¡°We¡¯re good. Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan put Sonny down and remarked, ¡°Easy on the road then. Don¡¯t forget to put a helmet on Sonny. The wind is blowing pretty strong today.¡± ¡°I have a helmet in the boot.¡± Holding the bag of clothes with one hand, Liberty took her son¡¯s hand with the other and said, ¡°Say goodbye to Mr. Lewis, Sonny.¡± Sonny waved his arm at Duncan, ¡°Bye, Dunc.¡± Duncan waved back with a smile, ¡°Goodbye, Sonny.¡± Standing there, Duncan watched as Liberty led Sonny to the e¨Cbike and drove away. Then, he walked to his car. Ring, ring, ring¡­ His phone rang. Seeing that it was Zachary, Duncan took the call as he strolled along. ¡°Aren¡¯t you in a meeting, Zachary?¡± ¡°Can¡¯t I take a break and drink some water? Why didn¡¯t you drive my sister¨Cinw and Sonny home?¡± Zachary was still in his office, refusing to admit that he was acting nosy at the moment. Armed with a pair of binocrs, Zachary looked down through his window and saw his sister¨Cinw riding away with Sonny. He wanted to give his best friend a telling¨Coff for not seizing the opportunity. ¡°Liberty rode her bike here. She doesn¡¯t need a lift. I¡¯m not free anyway. I have to rush to Wiltspoon Hotel for a meeting with the client.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. ¡°Your sister¨Cinw paid me for the clothes.¡± Getting a bad feeling, Zachary asked, ¡°Paid for what?¡± ¡°The clothes I bought for Sonny. I spent almost two thousand bucks, but I only asked for a thousand five.¡± Zachary uttered, rather baffled, ¡°It makes sense why your mom fret whether you¡¯ll ever get married.¡± He then terminated the call. Having been hung up on, Duncan grumbled, ¡°What¡¯s with the nonsensical questions? I know you have a wife, and your family isn¡¯t on your back hounding you to get married, but mine is. But here you are, making such a crassment. You¡¯re really a bad friend.¡± Poor Zachary. Chapter 1131 Chapter 1131 Chapter 1131 Serenity woke up hungry. As she regained her senses, she habitually touched her side but did not feel the wolf. She tilted her head to look and saw that the pillow next to hers was empty. There was no warmth even under the nket. That wolf had gotten up long ago. Serenity thought the sky had just turned bright, but when she took her phone to check the time, she froze for a while and then sat up abruptly. It was almost noon! No wonder she felt hungry. Given that she had slept so long and just woken up, it would only be strange if she was not hungry. Zachary did not wake her up. Serenity quickly took a set of clothes into the bathroom to change into them. Following that, she washed up and hurried downstairs without putting on any makeup. While she was still on the stairs, her phone rang. It was the wolf who had called.. ¡°Zachary.¡± Serenity stopped to answer his call. As soon as she did, sheined about him in a low voice, ¡°You didn¡¯t wake me when you got up. I just woke up. It¡¯s already noon.¡± Zachary chuckled on the other end of the call. ¡°I saw you were sleeping soundly, so I didn¡¯t wake you and let you sleep a little longer. I called Ms. Sox for you and told her that you¡¯re a little tired today and would only return to the store in the afternoon.¡± Jasmine would imagine things if that was what Zachary told her. Nheless, Serenity and Zachary were quite unrestrained and unbridledst night. ¡°You¡¯re off work, right?¡± ¡°I just finished a meeting and am about to have lunch. You should eat beforeing out.¡± Zachary reminded Serenity, afraid that she would leave without eating anything. ¡°It¡¯s lunchtime, so I¡¯ll definitely eat before going out. Go and have your lunch then. I¡¯m going downstairs.¡± ¡°Okay, I love you.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°I¡¯m not very used to hearing your sweet words. I love you too.¡± Following that, she kissed the phone, which was what she learned from Jasmine¡¯s phone call with Josh thest time. Sheughed and asked Zachary, ¡°I kissed you. Did you feel it?¡± Zacharyughed with joy and responded, ¡°I felt it.¡± After setting up a romantic night for Serenityst night, she had indeed be much more passionate toward him. Zachary thought he would be more romantic in the future so his wife would always be passionate toward him. Serenity giggled and hung up the phone. As Zachary could not hear his wife¡¯s cheekyughter anymore, he was reluctant to move his phone away from his ear. He hoped he could always cling to Serenity. At this moment, Zachary finally understood why his father immediately retired and did not care about anything anymore once he could take over York Corporation. His father spent time with his mother every day instead¡­ Sure enough, if one could grow old together with someone for life, one would not give it up for anything in the world. Unfortunately, unlike his father, Zachary did not get married and have kids early. He only got married at the age of thirty and turned thirty one this year. His sessor was nowhere to be found. He would have tost at least twenty to thirty years in York Corporation before he could retire. Serenity did not know that his wolf was already thinking about retirement. As soon as she was downstairs, Mrs. Lane greeted her with a smile, ¡°Missus, you¡¯re up. You must be hungry. Lunch is just ready.¡± Serenity hummed. She felt that Mrs. Lane was looking at her meaningfully. She pretended not to notice and went into the dining room to eat as if nothing was wrong It would not be enjoyable for her to eat by herself, so she asked Mrs. Lane to join her. Once Serenity filled her stomach, she then had the mood to admire the interior of the house. Zachary had not asked anyone to tidy up the house, so the romantic scene fromst night was preserved. At this time, Jim walked in.Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. ¡°Missus.¡± Chapter 1132 Chapter 1132 Chapter 1132 Jim walked to Serenity¡¯s front and stopped, then he handed a small transparent bag containing a dozen strands of Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair to Serenity and said, ¡°Missus, this is what Mr. Zachary ordered me to do when he left home this morning. It¡¯s done.¡± ¡°These are? My granddad¡¯s hair?¡± Serenity asked as she took the bag. The result of her discussion with Zacharyst night was that she decided to use Noah to help them obtain Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair. Afterward, she would take them for a DNA test. ¡°Yes.¡± Serenity thanked Jim and asked, ¡°Noah was willing to help?¡± ¡°He¡¯s quite afraid of you, Missus. I brought you up to scare him, then he conscientiously went to pluck a dozen strands of his grandpa¡¯s hair.¡± As for how Noah coaxed Old Mr. Hunt into letting him pluck his hair, Jim was not bothered. Jim only wanted the result. Serenityughed. ¡°That kid is just young and impetuous. He doesn¡¯t have a bad nature.¡± Noah was still two or three months short of turning eighteen. He was indeed young and vigorous at that age. After receiving Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair, Serenity asked Jim to send her to the test center to do another DNA test. Serenity did the DNA test with Mrs. Stonest time, so she knew where the center was. Jim asked Zachary for instructions before he sent Serenity to the test center. When they walked out of the test center, they saw that Zachary¡¯s convoy had just arrived. Serenity walked toward the tall man who had gotten out of the car. She said to him while walking, ¡°You must be so free in the afternoon toe and pick me up. Jim could¡¯ve sent me home.¡± Zachary took two steps forward and held her hand. He led her to the car and said in a low voice, ¡°As long as I¡¯m free, I hope I¡¯ll be the one to pick my wife up.¡± Serenity no longer wanted to say anything about how domineering he was. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Fortunately, his domineering behavior now came with respect. He gave her enough freedom, unlike before when he disregarded her feelings. ¡°I went to Liberty¡¯s ce this morning to pick Sonny up.¡± Zachary used a normal tone as he was subtly iming credit from his wife. ¡°Voutes so busy at work. How will you take care of Sonny if you let him stay with you?¡± Zachary replied, ¡°My office is big, so I let him y in my office. He was very obedient and didn¡¯t throw tantrums.¡± ¡°Sonny was willing to y quietly in your office?¡± Serenity knew her nephew¡¯s temperament very well as she had brought him up. As well¨Cbehaved as Sonny was, he was still a three¨Cyear¨Cold kid. He was at the age of being naughty, active, and annoying. Unless there were toys that Sonny liked to y with, he would only sit still for five minutes before starting to touch everything and causing havoc. ¡°He was still sleeping when I took him to my office. He only started ying after he woke up.¡± Realization hit Serenity and sheughed. ¡°I told you so.¡± ¡°But Sonny wet my bed.¡± Zachary continued, ¡°I asked Duncan to buy some clothes for him. He went and bought a dozen sets of clothes, as well as a beautiful dress.¡± Serenity was speechless. Duncan bought a dress for Sonny! ¡°Sonny said the dress is reserved for the little sister who will be born to his little aunt.¡± Zachary stared passionately at Serenity when he said that. Serenity knew what he meant. She pinched his face in amusement. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like that. I didn¡¯t take any medicine behind your back.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary pulled his wife into his arms and ced one hand on her t belly. ¡°I really hope we can have a little girl as Sonny said.¡± Since they were on the topic of having a baby again, Serenity asked, ¡°I heard Jasmine mention that anyone who gives birth to a son in your family will be rewarded fifty million dors by the elders, but five hundred million dors if it¡¯s a daughter. Is that true? ¡°She also said that none of the women who have been married into your family so far has gotten the reward of five hundred million bucks.¡± Chapter 1133 Chapter 1133 Chapter 1133 Zachary said, ¡°I hope you can get Nana¡¯s reward of five hundred million.¡± Serenity pondered the question and said after a while, ¡°Your family hasn¡¯t had a daughter for generations. Perhaps it just runs in the family. Your family might just be fated to have sons only.¡± Zachary fell silent for a while before he said, ¡°It¡¯s possible. Our ancestor had a daughter but failed to raise her. Ever since that child passed, no one in the family has given birth to a girl. I remember my little aunt watched her diet closely before she gave birth to Rowan. She ate a lot of acidic food, saying that it¡¯ll promote the conception of a daughter. ¡°Her pregnancy with Rowan was also different from her first two pregnancies. Everyone thought she would give birth to a daughter. When the fetus took shape, we sought advice from an acquaintance. When that person said that it was a girl, everyone went crazy with joy.¡± Zachary recounted what happened that year. ¡°I was a teenager at that time, so I had a particrly deep impression of when my aunt was pregnant with Rowan. After hearing that she was going to give birth to a girl, I was also looking forward to her arrival. ¡°I even secretly prepared a lot of toys for her. The adults in our family bought a lot of pink clothes and shoes, and I also secretly bought her a pink dress. Callum and Kevin were about my age, so they did the same too. ¡°It happened to be a Saturday the day my aunt gave birth to Rowan. Everyone in the family -old and young, as well as our coteral rtives¨Cwas there. The hospital corridors were filled with our people. ¡°Everyone was overjoyed and happier than when Christmas was here. Nana smiled so brightly that her cheeks were sore, thinking that she was finally going to hold a granddaughter. In the end, the nurse came out with a big fat kid in her arms. Nana immediately grabbed the nurse¡¯s cor and questioned if she carried the wrong baby. ¡°She even said that my aunt was pregnant with a daughter, so why was a plump boy carried out instead? Everyone suspected that the nurse took the wrong baby. The nurse was betweenughter and tears. She repeatedly exined that my aunt was the only person in the delivery room and that she gave birth to a boy.¡± N?vel/Dr(a)ma.Org - Content owner. Serenity wanted tough when she heard the story. She could imagine what happened at that time. Zachary continued, ¡°Everyone could only ept the reality. The nurse also muttered that every other family would be thrilled if it was a son. Our family was the only one who asked for a daughter after knowing that it was a son, as if the hospital owed us a little girl. ¡°The hundred¨Cover people dispersed after knowing that our family gained a ninth son. The firecrackers that were meant to be lit up at home weren¡¯t lit up in the end. Since everyone ught it was going to be a daughter, girls¡® clothes were prepared. As such, Rowan wore pink clothes during the days he was in the hospital. ¡°Rowan only changed into his brother¡¯s hand¨Cme¨Cdowns after being discharged from the hospital, and my uncle dawdled for half a month before buying new clothes for him. People are saying that our family is like a temple. Nobody in the family can give birth to a daughter, and even if we do, we can¡¯t keep them alive.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Perhaps it¡¯s bad luck that was passed down in your family, causing your descendants to be born sons and making it difficult for daughters to be raised.¡± ¡°It was already like this during my grandfather¡¯s generation, so it might¡¯ve started from my great¨C grandfather¡¯s generation. We didn¡¯t think about this problem and didn¡¯t ask a fortune- teller for help. These days, there are very few fortune¨Ctellers with real skills. Many of them only scratched the surface but go around conning for some living expenses.¡± ¡°There are skillful ones, but there are very few of them. It¡¯s difficult to find out where they¡¯ve retired to.¡± Serenity was interested in the fortune¨Ctelling knowledge left by her ancestors. Her bookstore has many books on fortune¨Ctelling, but unfortunately, she did not have the talent to understand them. Moreover, her customers were middle¨Cschool students. Young people did not believe in fortune¨Ctelling, so who would read those books? They were ced in the corner of her shelves to collect dust, waiting for a destined person to pick them up and sweep the dust away so that they could serve their purpose. ¡°Let¡¯s bring this up to Nana someday. She¡¯s old and knowledgeable, so she might¡¯ve heard some legends from experts. I¡¯d like to talk to a fortune¨Cteller. I want to have a daughter. Zachary was afraid that he would end up like his family members from his great- grandfather¡¯s generation. Giving birth to a daughter but failing to keep her alive would be heartbreaking. Although medical skills were limited in the past and much more advanced now, sometimes, one¡¯s life could not be bought with money. Chapter 1134 Chapter 1134 Chapter 1134 Zachary¡¯s nana had found a fortune¨Cteller in the past to tell Zachary and Serenity¡¯s fortune. Would he have a way to solve the problem? He should more or less know something, right? Nheless, someone who only had a superficial knowledge of this probably would not be able to help the Yorks solve this problem. The husband and wife chatted about having a daughter. Before they knew it, they were back in front of Wiltspoon School. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Zachary sent Serenity into the store. He also needed to go back to work, so he did not stay for long before he left. Serenity could not help but chuckle when she thought about how she and her husband were talking about having a daughter during their whole journey here. ¡°What¡¯s so funny that is making you giggle? Tell me and make me happy too.¡± Jasmine ced some sweet treats in front of Serenity. ¡°Josh had someone send these over to me for tea.¡± ¡°Mr. Bucham treats you very well. He¡¯s considerate and obedient.¡± Serenity took a piece of the treats. ¡°He learned that from your husband. If not for Mr. York as an instructive precedent, I wouldn¡¯t even know he¡¯s also a generation wealth.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Zachary lying to me sets an example for everyone. It¡¯s actually beneficial.¡± Seeing as she was still in a good mood, Jasmine asked nosily, ¡°What did you do this morning? Mr. York specially called me to say that you couldn¡¯te to the store in the morning and that I¡¯ll have to watch the store. He was very gentle. ¡°I¡¯ve known him for so long, and yet he has never spoken to me as gently as he did this morning.¡± Due to Shawn having a crush on Serenity, Zachary was aware that Jasmine treated Serenity very well. She did not help Shawn pursue Serenity. Even so, Zachary was a little jealous of how important Jasmine was to Serenity. ¡°Nothing. I was just moved by himst night and ended up sleepingte. He did something romantic for me, and I took a video of it. I¡¯ll look back at it when I¡¯m old.¡± While telling Jasmine what happened, Serenity showed her the video she took. Jasmine praised how romantic Zachary was after she saw the video. She smiled ambiguously and said, ¡°No wonder you slepttest night. Hehe.¡± Her giggle made Serenity unable to resist tickling her. Jasmineughed so hard that her stomach hurt. She hurriedly begged for mercy. ¡°A good husband has to be trained by his wife. Seren, your husband will be trained by you to have good morals, physical abilities, and intellect. I couldn¡¯t have imagined the cold Mr. York creating such a romantic scene for you.¡± Chapter 1135 Chapter 1135 Chapter 1135 Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Josh often did romantic things for Jasmine, so she was not surprised at all. He had a high IQ and EQ, after all. On the other hand, Zachary had a high IQ but low EQ. When Josh gave him rtionship advice, he often roasted him for not being open¨Cminded. It was not easy for Zachary to go this far for Serenity. No wonder she was so moved that she slept through the first half of the day. Serenity said sweetly, ¡°He changed a lot for me. He deserves me putting in effort for him.¡± A married couple who were willing to give and put their hearts into their marriage wouldst a long time. ¡°I¡¯m so envious.¡± ¡°You¡¯re the object of other people¡¯s envy too.¡± Jasmine chuckled. ¡°That¡¯s right. I like to be the object of other people¡¯s envy. I feel happy and blessed ever since Josh appeared. My ears are also free from noise now that my family no longer arranges blind dates for me¨Ceven my aunt stopped doing so.¡± ¡°Your aunt must be smiling from ear to ear now. She really wanted you to marry into a rich family for a blessed life.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want to be married into a rich family, but I¡¯m willing to do so if it¡¯s Josh¡¯s family. I¡¯ll never feel bored for the rest of my life. Seren, I¡¯m especially interested in Julian now. How many great women are needed toplement such an amazing man?¡± Serenity responded, ¡°Sometimes, two outstanding people might not be a greatbination. It all depends on the type of person Julian likes.¡± ¡°I think he must have extremely high standards. He¡¯s a few years older than Josh but is still single. Say, why are so many brilliant men single and unmarried?¡± ¡°Perhaps they¡¯re too busy working and feel that there are more important things to do than fall in love and get married.¡± Jasmine thought of how busy Josh was as well andughed. ¡°They¡¯re probably just waiting to meet someone like us.¡± Serenity was amused andughed too. She had asked someone to help her knit crafts, so she did not have to rush. As such, she turned on the computer and prepared to draft a contract and a proposal. Among the three of them, she was the only one from the countryside. Although she had not lived in the countryside for more than ten years, she knew more about thend than her two best friends would. They nned to contract all deserted fields and use them to grow all kinds of vegetables and fruits. Vegetables needed to be grown near a water source so that watering can be done conveniently, but they would not need to be too picky if only grass was being grown. If they were to contract many fields to grow vegetables, they could not water them manually. Otherwise, how many people would they have to hire to finish watering? Serenity decided that after the contract was signed and the work began, they would also need to hire professionals to drill wells in the vegetable fields. Water pipes and automatic sprinkler nozzles that rotated at 360 degrees had to be installed so the vegetables could be watered automatically instead of manually. While Serenity was drafting the contract, she asionallymunicated with Jasmine. Jasmine would come over to look at it and then shrug. ¡°I only care about investments and dividends. I don¡¯t understand these at all and can¡¯t contribute in any way. You know me-l only know how to eat and drink. I¡¯m toozy to use my brain. ¡°My mom always says that raising me is like raising a pig. It was because of my personality that my aunt hoped that I would be married into a rich family so they no longer need to worry about me.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Just print it out and let Elisa take a look at it. She hears more than we do. We can change it if there are any problems, or we can have their legal department write one for us¨Cit¡¯s the same thing.¡± Chapter 1136 Chapter 1136 Chapter 1136 After finishing the treats sent by Josh, Jasmine picked up her phone and sent him a message: [Mr. Bucham, the treats you sent over are delicious. I liked them. Love you!] Mr. Bucham replied almost instantly: [If you like them, I¡¯ll send two more boxes over to you tomorrow.] Raising a foodie was the easiest thing for Josh. He just needed to cater to her tastes. ¡°Elisa didn¡¯te over today,¡± Jasmine said casually. Serenity responded, ¡°Her best friend has just broken up. She needs to gofort her.¡± In fact, Elisa was notforting her best friend who had fallen out of love but was visiting her new neighbor. Elisa was going to head out in the afternoon. When she drove past her neighbor¡¯s vi, she saw that the gate was open and the car Remy used to take was parked inside. It happened that Remy was just standing in the courtyard, so she stopped her car. She initially wanted to greet Remy, but he invited her into his vi for a stroll. Hence, she parked her car in front of his ce and dropped by for a while. This vi was the closest to the Stones¡®, so Elisa had visited with her parents in the past and knew that the courtyard was beautiful. When Remy took her for a stroll, she said, ¡°I think there¡¯s no need to change much about the courtyard. The flowers and trees are growing well. If you were to grow new nts, you¡¯ll need to put in a lot of effort for them to grow nicely.¡± Remy smiled and said, ¡°I was thinking of recing all of them, but what you just said makes sense. In that case, I¡¯ll move them around appropriately. I¡¯ll remove the nts I don¡¯t like and nt the ones I like.¡± Elisa hummed. The houseyout needed to be changed, and the vi¡¯s entrance needed to be reoriented. The interior designer Remy hired said that the originalyout was out of date and the original owner did not hire someone else to refresh the interior. Designs and arrangements came and went. Once new styles were avable, the old ones should not be used anymore. ¡°Elisa, I don¡¯t have good taste. Help me take a good look at what style suits my vi if it were to be renovated. I¡¯m treating this vi as my home in Wiltspoon. When I get married and have kids in the future, we¡¯ll be living here. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. ¡°Women have different tastes from men. Judge with your taste and give me some suggestions.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Everyone¡¯s preference is different. If I help you n with my taste and your vi is renovated ordingly, what if your future wife doesn¡¯t like the style?¡± Remy looked at her with a gentle gaze and a smile. ¡°I trust your taste. I¡¯m sure my future wife will like the same style. You have the highest value and status in Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss. I believe no one has better taste than you.¡± He was telling the truth. Elisa¡¯s status was indeed the highest in Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss because there were no daughters in the richest family. Elisa said confidently, ¡°That¡¯s true. Don¡¯t me me if you adopt my suggestions but the oue isn¡¯t to your and your future wife¡¯s liking.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t¨CI definitely won¡¯t. I trust your taste, Elisa. I like your house¡¯s style very much.¡± Elisa chuckled and said, ¡°Our house is decorated in the style my mom likes. She likes ssic beauty and low¨Ckey luxury.¡± Remy praised her mom, ¡°Mrs. Stone has quite a good taste. My grandma also has the same aesthetic. Elisa, if you¡¯re free,e often and give me more suggestions.¡± Chapter 1137 Chapter 1137 Chapter 1137 Elisa was quick to promise Remy, ¡°Call me whenever you¡¯re here, and I¡¯lle over and I give you some advice. I guarantee your future wife will be very satisfied with your renovated house. When the timees, you¡¯ll have to reward me with huge Remy said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯ll be greatly rewarded.¡± Elisa looked at his smiling face and realized that he was always like that when he talked- always smiling before he spoke. Remy¡¯s smile was as warm as the spring breeze, making one unconsciously open up one¡¯s heart in front of him. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll be your renovation consultant.¡± Remy thanked her with a smile. ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll buy you a coffee.¡± ¡°I usually don¡¯t drink coffee or tea in the afternoon.¡± Remy was speechless. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Elisa was overjoyed when she saw that he was flustered. Sheughed and added, ¡°I don¡¯t drink coffee in the afternoon, but it doesn¡¯t mean that we can¡¯t go to a caf¨¦. Which caf¨¦ are you bringing me to?¡± ¡°In my spare time, I usually have coffee and listen to music at the caf¨¦ on the first floor of Wiltspoon Hotel. It helps me rx. If I were in Annenburg, I would go to The Meeting Ground, which is co¨Cowned by my sister¨Cinw and her best friend. ¡°The Meeting Ground has great business. They¡¯ve opened two or three branches now, but the main store is still the most popr one. Many people go there for my sister¨Cinw and Ms. Jennings, who¡¯s the missus of the Ormonds.¡± Elisa enjoyed listening to the love story of Remy¡¯s big brother. She said, ¡°When I¡¯m free to go to Annenburg next time, bring me to your sister¨Cinw¡¯s caf¨¦. How does itpare to Wiltspoon¡¯s Beans and Cream?¡± Remy had also been to Beans and Cream. He answered after some thought, ¡°My sister¨Cin-w¡¯s caf¨¦ is more like a caf¨¦ for influencers because everyone goes there for her. On the other hand, Beans and Cream is quiet and safe. They each have their pros.¡± Beans and Cream was owned by Old Mrs. York. Remy had inadvertently learned about it after cooperating with York Corporation. Elisa walked outside with a smile while Remy stood in ce and looked at her. After taking a few steps and realizing that Remy did not follow her, Elisa turned and asked with a smile, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you were going to treat me to coffee? Why aren¡¯t you moving? Are you regretting it?¡± ¡°Why would I?¡± Remy immediately resumed his gentle look. He strode up to Elisa¡¯s side and walked out of the vi together with her, side by side. His bodyguards wanted to follow. ¡°You don¡¯t need to follow us.¡± Remy did not let his bodyguards follow him, and he did not drive. After Elisa unlocked her car, he walked straight to the passenger side, opened the door, and sat in the passenger seat. His bodyguards were lost for words. Elisa was also startled. She looked at him and asked, ¡°Remy, you¡¯re not driving there?¡± ¡°We¡¯re going to the same ce, so we can just go in one car,¡± Remy answered as if it was a matter of course. Elisa wanted to say that she had something else to do after having coffee with him, but she did not say it in the end. She was only going to Serenity¡¯s bookstore to talk about the investment. It would be the same if she went tomorrow. Who knew, Remy added, ¡°I suppose many people recognize your car in Wiltspoon, Ms. Stone. It¡¯ll be absolutely safe for me to take your car.¡± Chapter 1138 Chapter 1138 Chapter 1138 Elisa asked, ¡°Are you¡­ taking me as your guardian angel?¡± Remy said without blushing, ¡°I¡¯ll pay for your service.¡± Elisaughed and said, ¡°I wasn¡¯t familiar with your family in the past. After meeting you, I purposely asked my brother about your family and learned that you¡¯re the least skilled in self¨Cdefense among your brothers, so you always have bodyguards with you when you go out, right?¡± ¡°Mm. I was very chubby as a child, and people who are too fat don¡¯t like to exercise. I also cked when practicing kung fu, and the result is that I have the poorest skills among my brothers. Left with no choice, I had to hire bodyguards.¡± Among Remy and his nine brothers, he was the only one who had bodyguards following him everywhere. The others would only asionally bring a few bodyguards for show. Remy would feel unsafe without his bodyguards. Elisa started her car and said, ¡°I¡¯m a weakdy, but I don¡¯t have bodyguards with me when I go out. I only bring a few with me when I go shopping so they can help me carry things.¡± ¡°Elisa, have you ever trained?¡± ¡°Given the family Ie from, I¡¯ve more or less trained for self¨Cdefense, but I don¡¯t have realbat experience.¡± Elisa did not have a great reputation in Wiltspoon. She was a little feisty and rude. Besides, the Stones had a high status here, so no one dared offend her. Even if she did not go out. with a bodyguard, normal gangsters who saw her car would stay far away. Since she had a stable life, she did not need to bring bodyguards with her when she went out. The most ostentatious person in Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss was Zachary, but he mainly used bodyguards to stop his pursuers. ¡°Wonder Woman, you¡¯ll have to protect me in the future.¡± Elisa burst outughing and said, ¡°I don¡¯t have realbat experience, so how can I protect you? Besides, I only learned some basic punches and kicks. I don¡¯t remember the moves now. ¡°Remy, I suggest you find a woman who can fight to be your wife in the future, preferably a policewoman or something. She¡¯ll be able to protect you if you encounter danger on your dates.¡± Remyughed as well. ¡°That¡¯s not necessary. I¡¯m just the worst among my brothers, but it¡¯s not like I can¡¯t handle gangsters. If I meet a woman I like, I¡¯d protect her even if it means getting myself hurt.¡± He looked at Elisa and added, ¡°I can protect my woman.¡± ¡°I was just kidding.¡± Elisa asked with a smile, ¡°Have you met someone you like?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not sure yet¨Cnot sure if it¡¯s love, but I quite like seeing her. I haven¡¯t been in love before and don¡¯t have experience, so I¡¯ll observe first.¡± Elisa became interested. ¡°Which family is she from?¡± ¡°I can¡¯t tell you now. Once I confirm my feelings and sessfully pursue her to be my girlfriend, I¡¯ll definitely introduce you to each other.¡± 01 Elisa did not force him to tell her who it was. ¡°Thedy you like must be outstanding. I heard the Johnsons and the Yorks are the same. You¡¯re very cautious with marriages because you can¡¯t divorce and migrate. Those who migrate to be foreigners won¡¯t be able to get a share of the family property.¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. The men in our family pamper their wives. I didn¡¯t expect the Yorks to be the same.¡± ¡°Good family values lead to good men. There¡¯s a reason your families are the richest in your respective cities.¡± Elisa felt that her family had good values as well, but they could notpare to the Yorks and the Johnsons. Many of the men in the Stones cheated after marriage, kept mistresses, and had several illegitimate children. Their families were often chaotic. Elisa¡¯s parents had a good rtionship. They despised men who were unfaithful to their family and their marriage. As such, her mother disallowed her big brother from putting someone who had cheated with a mistress and had illegitimate children in an important position in thepany. +Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1139 Chapter 1139 Chapter 1139 ¡°Elisa, are we considered friends now?¡± asked Remy as he tilted his head. Elisa looked at him and then focused on driving again. She answered with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re friends, and we¡¯re also neighbors.¡± Remy looked quietly at her side profile. She was a bright girl, and her beauty was known. ¡°Then can I ask you a personal question?¡± ¡°Go ahead. I¡¯ll answer you if I think I can, but please forgive me if I can¡¯t. Everyone has the right to protect their privacy.¡± Remy smiled and asked, ¡°What kind of men do you like? Besides Mr. York.¡± He naturally knew about Elisa¡¯s pursuit of Zachary. After all, he had a good rtionship with both York Corporation and Zachary himself. In addition, Elisa was very high profile when she pursued Zachary in the past. Remy could not have not known even if he tried to. Elisa fell silent. ¡°Elisa, I¡¯m sorry. I¡¯m just curious. I think you¡¯re a very nice girl. It¡¯s not your problem that Mr. York doesn¡¯t like you; it¡¯s just that he had met his type of girl.¡± Remy quickly apologized, thinking that he had uncovered Elisa¡¯s scar. ¡°It¡¯s okay. I¡¯ve long given up my feelings for Zachary. Whether it was before this or now, I¡¯m able to face him openly. He didn¡¯t do me wrong either-he never liked me, nor did he ept my feelings, let alone make any promises. ¡°It was just an unrequited crush between me and Zachary, but I don¡¯t think it was wrong of me to pursue him. It¡¯s normal for an outstanding man to be liked by many girls, just like how a finedy will have many pursuers. ¡°It¡¯s much easier for a woman to approach a man than for a man to approach a woman. I simply pulled down the veil between us and did what many girls would¡¯ve done but didn¡¯t. have the courage to do so. My actions didn¡¯t bear any fruit, but I don¡¯t regret it.¡± Elisa chuckled as she continued, ¡°I know many people were curious whether my cousin and I would be enemies because Zachary likes her instead. I don¡¯t have a good temper, so many people wondered if I¡¯ll plot something against her. ¡°In our circle, no one said it to my face, but they were waiting to watch a show. Unfortunately, I let them down. ¡°I was disappointed when Zachary chose Seren over me, but I also have my pride. Since he didn¡¯t choose me, I epted it, let it go, and didn¡¯t cling to him. It¡¯s not like I, Elisa Stone, am going to be single forever. Zachary isn¡¯t the only good man in the world after all. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. ¡°Besides, Zachary has many shorings. Even Seren was hurt by him. Honestly, I think she¡¯s more suitable for him. If there¡¯s a conflict between me and Zachary, we¡¯re definitely going to fight because we¡¯re proud. I can¡¯t be calm, and I won¡¯t stop until I fight it out with him. ¡°Seren is much calmer when she handles conflicts between them. Even at the time, when she was the angriest when Zachary confessed his identity, she managed it much better than I would have.¡± At this point, Elisa tilted her head to look at Remy, who was also looking at her. Their eyes met for a while, then Elisa focused on the road ahead again. She was driving and could not be distracted. ¡°I think other men of the Yorks are good too, but I won¡¯t consider them anymore. They won¡¯t consider me as well because I pursued Zachary in the past. ¡°Remy, are all your brothers married? My mom said I should consider one¡¯s family of origin. for marriage. Your family¡¯s values are as good as the Yorks.¡± Remy smiled and answered, ¡°I¡¯m happy that you fancy my brothers, but my older brothers are all married, and my younger brothers are all younger than you. I suppose you won¡¯t like younger men.¡± Only the first, second, and fourth sons of the Johnsons were married. Elisa did not pay attention to FC Manor, so she believed whatever Remy said. The two of them chatted and soon arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel. Elisa did not want to park her car in the basement, so she took one round in front of the hotel entrance and found a spot. She parked her car there. When she got out of the car and saw a luxury car next to her. She froze. It was Clive¡¯s car. Chapter 1140 Chapter 1140 Chapter 1140 ¡®Did Clivee to Wiltspoon Hotel again?¡¯ Elisa wondered. Stone Group also had a five-star hotel under its umbre, and Clive used to talk business with clients at their hotel. Thest time he set foot in Wiltspoon Hotel was because an important client stayed here. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Remy asked with concern when he saw Elisa staring at the car next to hers. ¡°Nothing. I just saw my big brother¡¯s car-this is his. Remy, let¡¯s go have coffee, but let¡¯s hurry up and leave after we finish our drinks. My brother will probably take some time if he¡¯s talking about business. If we¡¯re fast, we won¡¯t be seen by him,¡± Elisa exined and turned around to walk into the hotel. Remy kept up with her and walked side by side with her. He asked, ¡°Are you afraid that your brother will see us having coffee together?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not afraid, but I don¡¯t want him to misunderstand.¡± Remy smiled and said, ¡°That¡¯s true.¡± They were both single, so anyone who saw them having coffee together would misunderstand the situation. Speak of the devil. Remy and Elisa had just reached the revolving door at the hotel entrance when they met Clive and some other people. Elisa¡¯s instinct was to turn around and walk away. ¡°Elisa!¡± Clive called out. Elisa, who had turned around and taken two steps away, turned back again and greeted him with a smile, ¡°Clive, what a coincidence.¡± Clive looked at Remy and asked his sister with a stern face. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± His sister was with Remy. Since she was already seen by her big brother, Elisa did not hide and told him the truth,¡± Remy is treating me to coffee. He usually has coffee here, so we came here for coffee.¡± Clive looked at Remy. Remy exined with a gentle smile, ¡°Mr. Stone, my house is under renovation, and Ms. Stone gave me a lot of suggestions. I¡¯m grateful, so I invited her to a cup of coffee. I have no bad intentions.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Of course, he did not have bad intentions, only deep intentions. Clive was not very convinced. Even so, he could not say much in front of so many people. He could only say to his sister, Go home after coffee.¡± He also said to Remy, ¡°Mr. Johnson, feel free to ask me if you have any questions in the future. Stone Group is involved in real estate, so I¡¯m more experienced than Elisa is in this.¡± Remy smiled gently as usual and responded, ¡°Then I¡¯ll look for you in the future, Mr. Stone.¡± Clive looked at Remy for a moment and said, ¡°I¡¯ll help you as long as I¡¯m free and able, Mr. Johnson. I¡¯ll be taking my leave now.¡± ¡°Please, Mr. Stone.¡± Clive looked deeply at his sister for a moment, then he sent his client to the car. Heter asked his company executives to return to thepany first while he turned around and walked back. He was notfortable with his sister having coffee with Remy. Enjoy Ad-Free Reading>> GO Chapter 1141 Chapter 1141 Chapter 1141 Elisa did not know that Clive would return. After she entered the hotel caf¨¦ on the first floor with Remy, Remy ordered a ss of fruit juice for her, while he ordered a cup of coffee. ¡°Won¡¯t you have trouble sleeping if you drink coffee now?¡± Elisa ordered some pastry as well. ¡°No. I have a huge workload to deal with. If I don¡¯t drink coffee, I won¡¯t be able to stay awake untilte at night.¡± His work schedule was so packed that he had to workte hours every day. If one day he had the chance to hold one of the most important days of his life, he would definitely find time to rx. ¡°Elisa.¡± Shortly after the two of them started chatting, Clive came in and saw them sitting by the window. While walking toward them, he shouted at his sister. Elisa turned her head, only to see her brother walking toward him. She felt as though she was caught by her parents. Wait. Just now, when she bumped into her brother at the hotel entrance, he was made aware that she was drinking coffee with Remy. Why was she feeling guilty? At this thought, Elisa generously pulled out a chair for her brother. After her brother was seated, she asked, ¡°Clive, what do you want to drink?¡± ¡°Mr. Stone,¡± Remy greeted Clive with a smile. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Clive stole a look at Remy before saying to his sister, ¡°I¡¯ve drunk quite a lot just now. I don¡¯t need a drink now. I¡¯ll just have a seat.¡± Elisa slid the pastry she had ordered to her brother. Cliver did not eat it. He deliberately sat there to be a third wheel. As Remy was excellent, Clive admired him and was interested in working with FC & Co. Nevertheless, Remy had chosen to work with York Corporation. Consequently, Clive and Remy were merely acquaintances. If Remy were a young talent of Wiltspoon, Clive would be more than ready to see his sister get into a rtionship with Remy. Unfortunately, Remy came from Annenburg. Annenburg and Wiltspoon were far away from each other. A self-drive journey on a highway would take seven to eight hours, and it was a long distance. Elisa was Clive¡¯s only sister. He could not bear to see his sister marry into a family who lived so far away. Given that Elisa and Remy had not gotten together yet, he covertly stopped them so that his sister would not fall deeply in love. ¡°Mr. Johnson, why did you think of buying this vi back then?¡± Clive was looking for a topic to talk to Remy about. ¡°You¡¯re not desperate for money. You could¡¯ve actually bought a new vi instead of a pre-owned one.¡± Remy said, ¡°Although the vi is second-hand, it covers arge area and is easily essible. It has a great security system too. The surrounding neighbors are either wealthy people or celebrities. You were also interested in it, weren¡¯t you?¡± Clive choked. Back then, he wanted to buy the vi as it was close to his ce. He nned on connecting it with his own vi after buying it. In that case, he could expand his vi. However, Remy, who came from Annenburg, already had a vi in Wiltspoon that he always resided in. Clive felt that there was no need for Remy to buy such a huge vi unless Remy nned to settle down in Wiltspoon or flip the property. ¡°You have a ce to live in, Mr. Johnson.¡± ¡°So do you, Mr. Stone.¡± Remyughed and said, ¡°I¡¯m not short of money, so I buy a house when I feel like doing it. Indeed, I¡¯m quite fond of that house, so I bought it.¡± Clive was speechless. Wealthy people had more than one house and all of them usually had quite a lot of properties. Clive¡¯s way of questioning Remy just did not hold water. ¡°Mr. Johnson, are you nning on settling down in Wiltspoon?¡± Clive thought that if Remy became a citizen of Wiltspoon, he would approve of his sister getting together with Remy. Considering that his sister was fussy, she hardly showed interest in any man. There were many young talents in Wiltspoon, yet she was only interested in York men. Due to the rtionship between Zachary and Serenity, Elisa could not possibly marry anyone from the Yorks. Other wealthy men could notpare with the Yorks in terms ofpetence, status, or appearance. Rerny, on the other hand, excelled in everything. Furthermore, he was born into arge family, which was well-matched with the Stones. Chapter 1142 Chapter 1142 Chapter 1142 Most importantly, Elisa and Remy could get along well. ¡°I¡¯m in charge of all the businesses of FC & Co. in Wiltspoon. I¡¯ll be staying in Wiltspoon for a long time, so it¡¯s equivalent to settling down here. I¡¯ll return to FC Manor asionally, but I¡¯ll be more of a guest. My mom always says that I treat FC Manor like a hotel as I usually stay for only two nights.¡± Elisa ced her hand under the table and poked her brother. After that, she leaned forward and whispered to her brother, ¡°Clive, it¡¯s very abrupt of you to keep asking Remy those personal questions. You two aren¡¯t even close.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Elisa only became familiar with Remy after meeting him several times. Clive¡¯s eyes settled on his sister. Was she not interested in Remy at all? Clive was helping Elisa to fish for information in advance. He recalled that when Elisa pursued Zachary, she ended up feeling hurt and bing an object of ridicule. Clive took pity on her and understood that she had no feelings for Remy. It was probably Clive¡¯s wishful thinking. Remy did not express his feelings either. It was likely that Clive was overthinking it. After having a renewed thought, Clive did not really speak. The two men were CEOs of their ownpanies. Given that Remy was working closely with York Corporation, Clive was wary of talking business with Remy. Nevertheless, Clive did not leave. He stayed there until Elisa finished her fruit juice and pastry. ¡°Elisa, aren¡¯t you going to discuss your investment with Serenity today?¡± Clive reminded his sister that it was time for her to leave. Elisa took a glimpse of the time and said, ¡°Not today. I¡¯ll meet Seren and Jas tomorrow. Clive, you¡¯re busy with work, aren¡¯t you?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± He was still here all because he wanted to protect her. ¡°If you¡¯re busy, you can carry on with your work. I¡¯ll send Remy home.¡± Clive asked, ¡°You¡¯re sending him home, huh?¡± Remy broke in at the opportune moment and smiled awkwardly. ¡°I came here in Elisa¡¯s car.¡± Remy¡¯s smile was piercing and Clive disliked it. ¡°Mr. Johnson, you can take a cab home. Or you can wait for a moment over here and inform your bodyguard and chauffeur to pick you up.¡± ¡°Clive, since we¡¯re going home, we can drop him on our way. His bodyguard and car are in his new house. We¡¯ll pass by his house on our way home.¡± Clive was at a loss for words. No matter how gloomy Clive was, he still stood in front of his car, watching his sister drive Remy. ¡®What is Remy trying to do? Is he interested in Elisa? He smiled like a fox. Even an experienced person like me can¡¯t see through him.¡¯ Clive sighed, worrying about his sister. When Elisa was infatuated with Zachary back then, Clive advised her repeatedly and felt distressed. Now, Elisa got closer to Remy. Remy might smile at everyone and seem gentle, but it was not known whether he was interested in Elisa. s. Clive could not help but feel distressed all over again. Elisa currently had no feelings for Remy. Simr to how Remy answered Elisa¡¯s question, he liked the sight of Elisa, but that was not love. He was not sure about it yet. As Remy said, he had no experience in rtionships. He would not take action abruptly before understanding his own feelings. Besides, it appeared that the Stones refused to let Elisa marry and move to Annenberg. Chapter 1143 Chapter 1143 Chapter 1143 At Wiltspoon School, a convoy of cars made a turn from the highway to the road in front of the school gate. After that, they stopped a few hundred feet away from the school gate. A bodyguard got out of the first car. He pulled open the rear door and said grimly, ¡°Ms. Newman, we¡¯ve arrived at Wiltspoon School.¡± Camryn silently grabbed the white cane beside her. Then, her handnded on the several gifts on the seat. Mrs. Newman was the one who prepared the gifts. Camryn had no idea what those were. She was picked up by Mrs. Newman at the florist. The second car was Mrs. Newman¡¯s exclusive car. She pressed down on the window button and signaled to the bodyguard. When the bodyguard approached her, she said, ¡°Tell her to walk straight about a thousand feet from where she alighted, and the first store on her left is Serenity¡¯s bookstore.¡± The bodyguard acknowledged her order courteously. Before he returned to the car, Camryn had already groped her way out of the car with the gifts. She stood there, unable to find her direction at that moment. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Shepleted her middle school education at Wiltspoon School, but she did not graduate. She transferred to a special needs school as she went blind. It had been a decade since she returned to Wiltspoon School. She heard that the school had expanded and that many new ssrooms and hostels had been built. Wiltspoon School had be one of the major schools in Wiltspoon. She remembered there were many stores in front of the school. It was said that those who were able to set up their stores in front of the school were no ordinary people. They had influential figures to lean on. Not everyone could open their stores in front of the school. Serenity was able to open a bookstore here for a couple of years. Could she be leaning on the Yorks? ¡°Ms. Newman, the bookstore is about a thousand feet from here. The first store on your left is the bookstore.¡± The bodyguard passed Mrs. Newman¡¯s message to Camryn. ¡°Camryn, remember what I told you. Beg for mercy on behalf of your sister. Regardless of the mistake Carrie made, she¡¯s your biological sister!¡± Mrs. Newman reminded Camryn frostily. Mrs. Newman and her husband requested to meet Zachary at York Corporation, but he refused to meet them. They dared not phone Serenity without Zachary¡¯s approval, worried that Zachary would fly into a rage. If that happened, their beloved daughter would not be released. Mrs. Newman had no choice but to make use of her detested elder daughter. ¡°I¡¯ll express my apology to Mrs. York, but I can¡¯t guarantee she¡¯ll forgive Carrie.¡± Camryn was willing toe simply because she felt that she was the cause of the feud between Serenity and Carrie. Mrs. Newman went to the store and told her to beg for mercy on behalf of her sister, so she obliged. Camryn wanted to apologize to Serenity for dragging her into the mess too. ¡°You must make Serenity forgive your sister and drop the idea of pressing charges against Carrie. Otherwise, your sister¡¯s life will be ruined.¡± Mrs. Newman felt that she would be able to meet her daughter after thetter was detained for fifteen days. However, if Serenity decided to charge Carrie, Carrie would be sentenced and her life would be ruined. ¡°If Serenity doesn¡¯t forgive Carrie and considers charging Carrie, you should keep begging her. You should kneel down and beg her until she promises you. Don¡¯t forget that you¡¯re the cause of this issue!¡± When Mrs. Newman was speaking, she looked at Camryn with resentful eyes. Mrs. Newman was not fond of Camryn even though thetter was her biological daughter. Back then, she wanted to strangle Camryn very badly. It was her current husband who stopped her Chapter 1144 Chapter 1144 Chapter 1144 Mrs. Newman kept Camryn unwillingly, but she did not fulfill her duty as a mother. Event though Camryn was her biological daughter, she was unloving toward her. After Mrs. Newman¡¯s ex-husband died, Camryn was still an immature kid who clung to her mother. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Whenever Camryn bawled and wanted a hug from Mrs. Newman, Mrs. Newman would turn a deaf ear to it. When Mrs. Newman was distressed, she would kick Camryn away. Even the nanny was deeply shocked at the situation. Mrs. Newman hated Camryn. Although she beat, scolded, and even kicked Camryn, the kid would still bawl and scream, ¡°Mommy, hug me.¡± After Mrs. Newman¡¯s ex-husband died, she did not have to put on an act and stopped carrying Camryn anymore. She ordered the nanny to carry the kid away, never wanting the kid to appear in front of her. She hated the sight of her elder daughter¡¯s face. Camryn took after her parents¡¯ strengths. She resembled both her father and Mrs. Newman, but somehow, Mrs. Newman would not love her. As the nanny had taken care of Camryn for a long period, she had grown attached to Camryn. She was worried that Mrs. Newman would suddenly lose her temper and kick Camryn to death. Whenever Mrs. Newman was at home, the nanny would try her best to coax Camryn into ying outside so that Camryn would not meet Mrs. Newman. This was to avoid Camryn from begging her mother for hugs. Little by little, Camryn was no longer keen on getting her mother¡¯s hugs. She was only close to her nanny. However, after Mrs. Newman found out that the nanny was like a mother to Camryn, she fired the nanny. Weeping, Camryn begged Mrs. Newman not to fire the nanny. She even kneeled down to beg Mrs. Newman, but it proved futile. That was how much Mrs. Newman loathed Camryn. This was because Mrs. Newman was not in love with Camryn¡¯s biological father. The person she had always loved and wanted to marry was her current husband. Nevertheless, her parents were fond of herte husband instead¡­ Being forced to marry a man she did not love, Mrs. Newman could not bring herself to love Camryn. Although Camryn was unable to see her mother¡¯s expression, she could sense that her mother looked at her in a wicked and hateful manner, which sent a chill down her spine. Every time Camryn felt the chill, she knew that her mother was giving her a death stare. ¡°I¡¯ll try my best.¡± After speaking gently, Camryn slowly walked forward with the help of the white cane as she held the gifts. Ever since she matured, she had stopped expecting love from her mother. Mrs. Newman disliked and even loathed Camryn. She could not wait for Camryn to die. The nanny always told Camryn to stay away from her mother, or her mother would beat her to death. Camryn had no impression of her father because she had not been weaned from breastfeeding when her father passed away. Given that her mother hated her, her nanny was the only person who treated her well and provided her with some warmth, care, and motherly love. Unfortunately, Mrs. Newman fired the nannyter. It was no use crying and begging Mrs. Newman. Without the nanny¡¯s care, Camryn could only rely on herself. She had a hard time surviving in the Newmans¡¯ household. She slowly fell sick without the nanny¡¯s care. Even when her condition became severe, her mother did not send her to the hospital¡­ Fortunately, Camryn¡¯s aunt returned. Realizing that Camryn was very sick, she sent Camryn to the hospital. Otherwise, Camryn would not have only suffered vision loss. Camryn tightened her hold on the white cane and took a few deep breaths. She told herself to stop recalling those incidents and hold back. Once she had regained her vision¡­ She heaved a sigh-she had no idea when she could fully restore her lost vision. Now, she was no different from a blind person. After suppressing her anger, Camryn pulled herself together. Serenity¡¯s bookstore was about a thousand feet away from where she got out of the car, so how many steps would she need to take? Chapter 1145 Chapter 1145 Chapter 1145 Camryn had asked her store assistant to help measure her steps as she was visually impaired. Given her short steps, she needed four steps to travel about three feet. Although roughly a thousand feet was not an exact figure, she had to walk over a thousand steps. Deep down, Camryn was counting her steps as she walked slowly. Mrs. Newman was not bothered about Camryn¡¯s pace. After winding up her window, Mrs. Newman called her husband. Once her husband picked up her call, she said, ¡°Darling, I made Camryn meet Serenity.¡± Mr. Newman hummed in acknowledgment before he said, ¡°You need to speak to Camryn nicely. That way, she¡¯ll be willing to beg for mercy on behalf of Carrie.¡± ¡°Does she dare reject my requests?¡± Mr. Newman choked, unable to reply. ¡°Darling, try to pull some strings and see if you can save Carrie. She has been pampered since young. How can she endure the hardship there? ¡°At the thought that she¡¯s suffering there, my heart aches so much. It was all Camryn¡¯s doing. If it weren¡¯t for her, the Hunt girl wouldn¡¯t have feuded with Carrie. ¡°Carrie settled a score with the Hunt girl only because she was wronged, but her n backfired. The Hunt girl had a hold over Carrie. I really want Camryn to die very badly. Why isn¡¯t she dead?¡± ¡°Honey.¡± On the phone, Mr. Newman said helplessly, ¡°Now isn¡¯t the time to vent your anger. I understand that you¡¯re upset and sympathize with Carrie, I sympathize with her too. Let¡¯s see how Camryn¡¯s begging goes. If the Hunt girl insists on pressing charges, we¡¯ll make another n.¡± Mrs Newman contained her hatred but uttered, ¡°Ugh.¡± ¡°You may carry on with your work. I just wanted to let you know about it.¡± With that, Mrs. Newman hung up the phone. Serenity was unaware that Camryn hade. However, Serenity¡¯s two bodyguards took two stools and were sitting at the entrance of the bookstore. They soon caught sight of Camryn At the same time, those guarding the door received a message from their colleagues who were secretly protecting Serenity. After confirming Camryn¡¯s identity, a bodyguard got up and walked into the bookstore. Serenity, who was working in front of theputer, heard some footsteps. She turned her gaze from the screen to the bodyguard and asked softly, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± ¡°Missus, Ms. Newman is here.¡± Serenity was momentarily dazed before she asked, ¡°Ms. Newman is here? Where¡¯s she?¡± ¡°She¡¯s on her way here.¡±This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. At the thought that Camryn was visually impaired, Serenity leaped to her feet. She walked past the counter and headed outside. ¡°Seren, who came?¡± When Jasmine saw her good friend going out, she closed the book she was reading halfway through and stuffed it back onto the rack. Then, she followed Serenity out. ¡°Ms. Newman. She¡¯s blind.¡± Jasmine was dumbfounded. A blinddy. ¡°Are you referring to the same Ms. Newman whom you and Elisa have helped before?¡± Jasmine asked after the thought struck her. Serenity hummed in acknowledgment as she walked. After walking out of the bookstore, she saw someone walking slowly. Once the school gate was opened, a car drove out of the school. It turned left and was heading toward Camryn. The driver saw Camryn walking in the middle of the road, so he gave her a honk. Camryn promptly moved aside to dodge the car. Given that she was visually impaired and worried, she dodged it so anxiously that she fell on the road. By the time she got up after the car left, she lost her direction. She had no idea where to go. Chapter 1146 Chapter 1146 Chapter 1146 Soon, Camryn heard someone running toward her. Based on the footsteps, it was probably a woman. ¡°Ms. Newman.¡± Camryn heard a rather familiar voice, which seemed to belong to Serenity. ¡°Ms. Newman.¡± Serenity scurried toward Camryn. She bent over and extended her hand to hold Camryn.¡± Ms. Newman, are you alright?¡± ¡°I¡¯m alright.¡± Sure enough, it was Serenity. Deep down, Camryn thought that what the bodyguard said was inurate. If the bookstore was a thousand feet or so away, Serenity could not have noticed her arrival so soon. Serenity¡¯s bookstore was probably located nearby. Jasmine helped to pick up Camryn¡¯s white cane and the gifts, which consisted of two boxes of dietary supplements and two sets of skin care products. Instead of asking Camryn why she came, Serenity and Jasmine first assisted her to the bookstore. After Camryn was seated, Serenity shot a look at the gifts and asked, ¡°Was it Mrs. Newman who made youe here?¡± ¡°Mm,¡± Camryn hummed softly. Jasmine poured a ss of warm water and handed it to Camryn. Camryn took the ss and thanked Jasmine. ¡°She¡¯s my best friend, Jasmine,¡± Serenity introduced Jasmine to Camryn. Camryn determined the direction based on where Jasmine handed her the water. She faced Jasmine and greeted her with a smile, ¡°Ms. Sox.¡± Jasmine¡¯s eyes settled on Camryn¡¯s pretty face. She felt that it was a pity that a beautiful girl like Camryn turned out to be blind. After Camryn drank some water, Serenity said indifferently, ¡°Mrs. Newman wanted you toe over to beg for mercy on behalf of Carrie, huh? Why didn¡¯t shee on her own?¡± ¡°Mr. Zachary forbade them to disturb you. They went to York Corporation but didn¡¯t manage to meet Mr. Zachary.¡± Camryn did not hide it. There was no need to help the couple hide it even though they were her family. ¡°She said I was the cause of the incident, so I must settle it. Mrs. York, I was indeed the cause of it. I was the one who dragged you into the mess. I¡¯m really sorry.¡± In the face of Serenity, Camryn looked apologetic. As Camryn was always wearing a pair of sunsses, Serenity could not see her gaze. Camryn was visually impaired, so there was nothing she could reveal through her gaze. When Serenity met Camryn previously, Camryn did not put on her sses. Her big eyes were beautiful but empty. ¡°It wasn¡¯t your fault. It was because I couldn¡¯t stand the situation that I meddled in it. I don¡¯t regret what I did. I¡¯ll ept the consequences regardless of what they are.¡± Serenity added tenderly, ¡°Ms. Newman, you don¡¯t need to feel guilty. Regarding this issue, none of us was at fault. It was Carrie¡¯s fault for being cruel and wild. The two of you might have different fathers, but both of you are half-siblings since you share the same mother. She treated you that way¡­ As an outsider, I couldn¡¯t stand it.¡± Camryn¡¯s face betrayed no sadness. She remained nonchnt probably because she had been hurt so much that she had turned numb. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. She was no longer the Camryn she was ten years ago. ¡°What did she want you to tell me?¡± Camryn said gently, ¡°Please don¡¯t press charges against her beloved daughter.¡± Serenity snorted. ¡°Why should I let Carrie off? A person like her won¡¯t learn from her mistake nor realize it.¡± Camryn fell quiet for a moment. She put down the ss of warm water and took out a bank card from the pocket of her trousers. She ced the card in front of Serenity. ¡°Mrs. York, my uncle would like me to pass this to you. He has changed the PIN of the card to 123456. The money in the card is meant to compensate for your car and mental damage.¡± Serenity put the card back into Camryn¡¯s hand and said tly, ¡°Tell your uncle that he should get me a new car inpensation instead of giving me money. As for thepensation for mental damage, I¡¯ll definitely receive it when I press charges against Carrie. The court will support me in requesting however muchpensation I want from them.¡± Chapter 1147 Chapter 1147 Chapter 1147 Serenity had reported the issue to the police. She would let the police handle it rather than privately asking forpensation from the Newmans. If the Newmans gave her a new car aspensation for her damaged car, she would ept it. However, she would only ept a new car of the same brand. Serenity bought the car in the fall ofst year. She had driven it for less than half a year. Camryn silently shoved the card into her pocket. Serenity went quiet for a moment. Then, she asked Camryn in a more rxed tone, ¡°Ms. Newman, if I insist on pressing charges against Carrie, will you be able to survive in the Newmans¡¯ house?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll have a rough time, but that¡¯s how I¡¯ve always been living in that house. Whether or not you press charges against Carrie, they¡¯ll treat me with the same attitude.¡± Camryn added calmly, ¡°Mrs. York, you can do whatever you want. You don¡¯t have to take me into consideration. After all, the incident started all because of me. You did that to Carrie just because you wanted to help and save me. It was Carrie¡¯s fault to hire people to destroy the car and cause injuries. She deserves to be punished. If I beg for mercy on her behalf, I¡¯ll be indebted to you. ¡°Besides my aunt, it had been a decade since someone like her had helped me this way.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Camryn would rather have a row with Mrs. Newman than beg Serenity not to charge Carrie. Camryn¡¯sst sentence caused Serenity so much heartache. Camryn was born into a wealthy family, so what? Her biological father passed away early, whereas her biological mother did not treat her as a daughter and was more vicious than a stepmother. After shaking Camryn¡¯s hand, Serenity said, ¡°Ms. Newman, I feel that I can hit it off with you. I¡¯m keen on being your friend. If you need any help in the future, feel free to let me know. I¡¯ll try my best to help you. Even if I can¡¯t, I¡¯ll get someone to do so.¡± Indeed, Callum was able to keep his cool. He did not move a muscle for a long time. If Serenity were a man, she would have wrapped Camryn into her arms and stopped anyone from bullying Camryn. ¡°Thank you, Mrs. York.¡± Camryn did not grovel and beg Serenity to forgive Carrie as Mrs. Newman wished for. Carrie showed no sign of regret at all. If Serenity chose not to press charges against Carrie, Carrie would still think of ways to take revenge against Serenity after she was released from the detention center. Serenity thought about her family¡¯s safety. She felt that if she let Carrie off, it would be equivalent toying up trouble for herself. Carrie was now aware that Serenity learned self- defense. Furthermore, Serenity had bodyguards protecting her. Therefore, Carrie might not dare act against Serenity. What about Serenity¡¯s sister and Sonny? Carrie was young, energetic, and wild. Receiving legal punishment was actually the way to save her. Only when she went to jail would she understand that she would be subjected to be punished by the rule ofw if she hadmitted a crime, regardless of her status and wealth. She must not think that she could do whatever she wanted just because she was a rich youngdy whose parents were well-connected and powerful. All are equal before thew! ¡°Mrs. York, you can carry on with your work. I shall stop disturbing you.¡± Camryn touched her white cane and rose to her feet. ¡°Let me get someone to send you back to your florist.¡± Given that Camryn was visually impaired, Serenity would not let her leave alone. ¡°She¡¯s still waiting for my news at the intersection. I need to inform her. You can have two people drag me to her car and ask me to get lost fiercely if that¡¯s convenient for you.¡± Serenity was slightly dazed. How did Camryn know that there were other people in her store? Serenity stretched her hand and waved it in front of Camryn. ¡°Mrs. York, you don¡¯t have to test me. Currently, I¡¯m really blind.¡± Chapter 1148 Chapter 1148 Chapter 1148 Camryn¡¯s aunt heard that there was a specialist in Annenburg. She thought of begging the specialist to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. Her aunt said even if it was not possible to meet the said. specialist, it would be good to have the specialist¡¯s apprentice take a look at Camryn¡¯s condition as well. The specialist¡¯s apprentice was Camryn¡¯sst hope. After a long period of treatment, Camryn could vaguely see. However, her vision was so unclear that she was no different from a blind person. Even so, she was ted and hopeful of regaining her sight. Nevertheless, she did not dare let anyone else know apart from her aunt. Anyhow, she was like a blind person right now, not able to see. ¡°Ms. Newman, how do you know there are other people in my store when you¡¯re visually impaired?¡± Camrynughed and replied, ¡°When I entered your store, I heard their footsteps. The steady footsteps belong to the men whom I guess are your bodyguards.¡± Serenity and Jasmine exchanged nces. It was said that the blind had exceptional hearing, which turned out to be true. Serenity called over two bodyguards and did as Camryn said. She was worried that the bodyguards would be overly rough with Camryn and end up hurting her, so she deliberately reminded them, ¡°Go easy on Ms. Newman. Just make it seem rough, but don¡¯t hurt her for real.¡± Despite Camryn¡¯s visual impairment, all men would want to care for and sympathize with al woman like her who was petite and had a small face. Serenity wished she could take care of Camryn on behalf of her brother-inw. ¡°Missus, we¡¯ll control our strength.¡± The two bodyguards kicked Camryn out of the bookstore together with the gifts she had brought. The bodyguards brought Camryn to the front of the car shortly after. Then, they threw Camryn onto the floor and hurled the gifts at her. One of the bodyguards said coldly, ¡°Get lost!¡± One of them was talkative and said frostily, ¡°The missus treats you so well. If it weren¡¯t for you, her car wouldn¡¯t have crashed. Yet you¡¯re asking the missus to be merciful, huh? How ungrateful of you. Get lost!¡± The bodyguards turned around and walked away. Mrs. Newman got out of the car only after the bodyguards left. She walked toward Camryn but did not help her stand up. ¡°Did you manage to settle it?¡± Seated on the floor, Camryn groped around to get back her white cane, but Mrs. Newman kicked it away. ¡°You can¡¯t even settle such a small issue, you useless thing! ¡°Mrs. York¡¯s car crashed. If she had not learned self-defense, she would¡¯ve been admitted to the hospital. It angered her so much that she refused to forgive Carrie. I begged her, but both of us are merely acquaintances. We¡¯re not close, in fact. ¡°Why would she show respect for me? Even though I did as you said, it didn¡¯t help. She¡¯s insistent on pressing charges against Carrie.¡± After Mrs. Newman insulted Camryn exasperatedly for being useless, she swung around and got into the car. She ordered the bodyguards, ¡°Let¡¯s go home.¡± ¡°Mom¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t call me Mom! I wish I hadn¡¯t given birth to you. You¡¯re a troublemaker who makes life hard for Carrie and me. Carrie is suffering all because of you. Camryn, let me tell you, I¡¯ll make things difficult for you since my daughter is having a hard time.¡± Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. With that, Mrs. Newman told the chauffeur to drive away. She left. Camryn had been hurt by her biological mother so much that she had long since turned numb. She listened to Mrs. Newman¡¯s words, but they did not cause her any more pain. Camryn learned something from her biological mother, namely that not all mothers loved their children. Chapter 1149 Chapter 1149 Chapter 1149 Beep, beep. Upon hearing the sounds of car horns, Camryn quickly got up. At that instant, she had no idea which direction she should walk. Judging from the continuous honks, it was almost time for school hours to end. Camryn walked directly to the right. A honk rang out again. Did she walk in the wrong direction? She hesitated for a moment before she turned around and walked back. Callum had no choice but to get out of the car. He strode toward Camryn and reached out to grip her wrist. Camryn instinctively struggled, but after sensing the cologne on him, she stopped struggling. Callum directly stuffed her into his car. He even looked back and helped her pick up her gifts and white cane. He crammed the things into his car and ced them beside her. Ring, ring¡­ Callum¡¯s phone rang. He parked his car by the roadside first to avoid blocking the parents who came to fetch their children from school. Only after parking his car did he answer his sister-inw¡¯s call. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll be there in a moment.¡± ¡°Callum, you¡¯ll be right here? Um, Callum, I¡¯m sorry but I¡¯ve already solved the problem. I don¡¯t need your help. You may return.¡± Callum asked, ¡°You¡¯ve solved it, huh?¡± ¡°Mhm. It¡¯s been solved. You can carry on with your work.¡± Deep down, Callum grumbled. Given that Serenity called him over in a desperate tone, he was under the impression that something big had happened. After Callum informed his brother about it, his brother urged him to hurry over as Callum must be the only person who could solve the problem. Therefore, he hurried over even before it was time for him to get off work. The moment he arrived, Serenity said that she did not need his help. Callum felt like he was being tricked by Serenity. Although Callum was unhappy about it, he dared not voice it. He said, ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll return and carry on with my work since you¡¯ve managed the problem.¡± ¡°Go ahead. You came here in vain because of me. I¡¯ll let your brother know and ask him to give you a half-day break tomorrow.¡± Amused, Callum asked, ¡°Serenity, can¡¯t you just be generous to ask him to give me one day leave instead?¡± On the phone, Serenity said with augh, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll give you one day of break. I¡¯ll let your brother know when I return tonight. You can get back to work.¡± With that, Serenity hung up the phone while grinning. She looked at her best friend and said, ¡°Camryn is the wife Nana picked for Callum.¡± Jasmine asked, ¡°How could Grandma May allow Mr. Callum to go with her? She¡¯s blind.¡± ¡°Just now, Camryn said that she really is blind, but that doesn¡¯t mean she¡¯ll be blind in the future. There must be a reason Nana picked her. As Camryn is in a difficult situation right now, Callum can protect and assist her.¡± ¡°So did you anxiously call Callum over to create an opportunity for the two of them?¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity chuckled. ¡°I just wanted to know the answer soon.¡± They had been watching many shows of Serenity and Zachary. Now, it was Serenity¡¯s turn to watch the drama. Jasmine said with tion, ¡°Seren, we¡¯re best friends. You must count me in when there¡¯s a good show.¡± ¡°I¡¯m asking you to join now, aren¡¯t I?¡± The two of them looked at each other andughed. Chapter 1150 Chapter 1150 Chapter 1150 In the evening, parents came to pick up their kids after school. Following the usual rush hour in the bookstore, Serenity headed to her sister¡¯s house for dinner, whereas Jasmine. went on a date with Josh. The bookstore would not operate at night. Serenity bought two bags of fruits for her sister. Serenity and Liberty still got along the same way as before. It did not change just because Serenity had be Zachary¡¯s wife. Serenity had the key to her sister¡¯s rented house. She straight away unlocked the door with. the key. She pushed open the door, only to see a girl. To be specific, it was Sonny. Sonny was walking around the house in a pretty dress, looking delighted. ¡°Sonny?¡± Serenity entered the house and shut the door. Whileughing, she asked her nephew, ¡°Why are you wearing a dress?¡± ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny scampered over and showed off his dress. ¡°Aunt Ser, do I look good in it?¡± Serenity ced the two bags of fruits on the coffee table. She carried her nephew and said with a smile, ¡°Yes. You look like a princess in this dress. But you¡¯re a boy. Boys don¡¯t wear dresses.¡± ¡°I know. Boys should do hardbor, so it¡¯s not convenient to wear a dress. Girls do light work, so they can wear it. This is discrimination against girls.¡± The kid had a good memory. He remembered what Zachary had said to him. By the time Liberty came out of the kitchen, she had finished cooking. They could start eating once Serenity arrived. ¡°He said he won¡¯t go out in this dress. He¡¯s just trying it on at home. He said this dress is too beautiful.¡± Liberty burst intoughter and said, ¡°Since he insisted on trying it on, I let him. After changing it, he started showing it off by walking around the house. This brat cares about his appearance.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you invite Jasmine along?¡± Serenity walked over while carrying her nephew. At the sight of the dishes her sister brought out which included her favorite seafood, Serenity said, ¡°Jasmine went on a date. She¡¯s in the first flush of love with Mr. Bucham. Both of them are dating while Zachary is busy with work and will only return home at midnight.¡± ¡°Given that he¡¯s the CEO, he has a lot of work to deal with. His time is precious. You must cherish it when he can spend so much time with you. As long as both of you continue to love each other, I¡¯ll be at ease.¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°Liberty, you¡¯ve said this eight hundred times. My ears are going to fall off. Zachary treats you well, doesn¡¯t he?¡± Liberty guffawed. ¡°I¡¯m just a little naggy, yet you find me annoying. I¡¯ll stop mentioning it then.¡± ¡°If you want to mention it, go ahead. It¡¯s a blessing to have a naggy sister. If you weren¡¯t my biological sister, you wouldn¡¯t want to nag me. It¡¯s because you care about my life.¡± Serenity asked the kid, ¡°Do you want to take off your dress?¡± Sonny nodded. Serenity helped Sonny take off his dress. Sonny passed her the dress and said childishly,¡± Aunt Ser, this dress is for your little girl. You can keep it.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have a little girl at home.¡± Liberty brought all the dishes out. While serving her son and Serenity food, she said, ¡°What he meant is that you can give birth to a girl in the future and let her wear it. He peed on his pants at Zachary¡¯s office this morning. Mr. Lewis was there to discuss a coborative project, so Zachary asked Mr. Lewis to buy Sonny clothes.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis bought the dress probably because he was attracted to it.¡± Serenity said with a grin, ¡°I guess Mr. Lewis is fond of daughters too, like Zachary.¡± No doubt, Zachary was fond of daughters. If she were to give birth to a girl in the future, Zachary would be a stay-at-home doting father. Serenity actually wanted a daughter. Considering that Zachary and she had good looks, their children should be good-looking. She loved kids who were fair like those in paintings. Liberty felt that Duncan was not fond of daughters. Duncan was just easygoing. Also, he would not bargain when buying clothes.Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. A bag of clothes cost fifteen-hundred dors, which meant that one set of clothes was over a hundred dors. Liberty usually bought clothes ranging around fifty dors for Sonny. She would always haggle over the prices and buy at the lowest price. Chapter 1151 Chapter 1151 Chapter 1151 Thinking about it, Duncan had a worth of hundreds of millions. Everything he bought was of good quality and expensive. It was normal that he did not know how to ask for a discount. Liberty did not voice her thoughts. Duncan¡¯s spending habits had nothing to do with her. She was simply his tenant. ¡°Aunt Ser, when will I have a little sister?¡± Sonny asked innocently. Serenity served food for her nephew. ¡°I don¡¯t know either. Even if I got pregnant, what if it¡¯s a little brother?¡± She had been discussing with Zachary how the York family had always given birth to sons. She suspected the York family was not fated to have daughters. Sonny gave it some thought and said, ¡°Aunt Ser, I want a little sister. I don¡¯t want a brother.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you want a little brother?¡± ¡°A brother can¡¯t wear skirts, just like me.¡± Serenity burst outughing. When she saw her sister eating like a bird and not eating meat, she said, ¡°Liberty, you¡¯ve been waking up early and restingte every day. You must be exhausted. You should take in more nutritious food. You can¡¯t just keep losing weight.¡± ¡°I try not to eat too much meat for dinner. I still have to go for a jogter. If I eat more, I¡¯ll have to run several more rounds.¡± Liberty had slimmed down a lotpared to the time before she divorced. However, she was still fat compared to Serenity, who always maintained a model-like figure. In the end, Serenity gave up as she was unable to convince her sister to eat more. ¡°I¡¯m already used to eating this much. I¡¯ve been eating strictly ording to the recipes the dietician gave me and exercising sufficiently. I only achieved this oue after persevering for so long. I can¡¯t let my effort go to waste.¡± Liberty nced at her sister¡¯s body enviously. She said with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll take note to manage my weight from now on and maintain a model-like body like you. I won¡¯t let myself eat till I end up bing a two-hundred-pound fatty.¡± She did not realize that she had indeed be exactly that. Logically speaking, she should have been upset and had a bad appetite. Her mother-inw and sister- inw always bothered her, and her rtionship with her husband turned sour. On the contrary, she still managed to eat and sleep well. Luckily, she started controlling her mouth and got active. Her weight kept dropping. Liberty wanted to stop losing weight after she hit hundred pounds. She did not want to be too skinny as it would make her grow old faster. She was already over thirty years of age. A middle-aged person was supposed to be a little chubby as a sign of contentment. ¡°I kickbox regrly, which burns a lot of calories. That¡¯s why I don¡¯t put on weight easily.¡± Serenity said, ¡°However, I¡¯ve gained a few pounds too. Zachary fed me especially well. I¡¯ll have to go to his gym every day to exercise too.¡± ¡°That¡¯s called pounds of happiness.¡± Liberty was d that Serenity and her husband had a good rtionship. She had a failed marriage, so she hoped her sister could live a better life. Ring, ring¡­ The doorbell rang. ¡°Mom, Aunt Ser, I¡¯ll get the door.¡± Sonny slid down his chair and ran to open the door. Serenity followed her nephew nheless. Sonny ran to the door. He went on tiptoes, yet he still could not reach the doorknob even after several tries. He turned to look at Serenity with bright eyes. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity smiled and lifted him to let him open the door. The door opened. The person standing there was Zachary. ¡°Uncle Zak.¡± Chapter 1152 Chapter 1152 Chapter 1152 Sonny was happy to see Zachary. His tiny body leaned toward Zachary. Zachary quickly put down the items in his hand to carry the child. Serenity bent over to pick up the two bags of fruits and a carton of milk he had bought. She said with a smile, ¡°Why are you here? Didn¡¯t you say you had a business engagement? I bought two bags of fruits for my sister, and now you too. We even bought the same types of fruits.¡± Zachary carried Sonny into the house. ¡°That¡¯s because our hearts are linked. Something came up, so my client can¡¯te over. Tonight¡¯s schedule was canceled, so I rushed over to have a meal.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. He knew that his beloved wife was at his sister-inw¡¯s ce. That was one of the benefits of having bodyguards following Serenity. He could give Serenity freedom and not ask about her whereabouts during usual days, but he would also be able to find her with just a call if he wanted to know her location. ¡°Liberty,¡± Zachary greeted. Seeing that her brother-inw hade, Liberty put down her cutlery and stood up to wee him. When she saw her sister carrying bags in her hand, she said, ¡°You two don¡¯t have to buy anything when youe over to my ce in the future. I can buy them myself. Take two bags of fruits when you¡¯re heading backter. Sonny and I can¡¯t eat that much.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t know Seren bought fruits too.¡± Zachary smiled gently. Liberty had to admit that the power of love was invincible. Since they first met, her brother-inw had been respectful toward her, but he was always cold. However,pared to before, Zachary started smiling more and had be gentler even if he was not smiling. The tough guy had be softer. ¡°We were just eating. You can wash your hands and eat with us.¡± Liberty went to the kitchen to get a set of cutlery for her brother-inw. She shifted all the delicious dishes to his side as well. Serenity was speechless. She knew that she would lose her sister¡¯s favor once Zachary came. It was like she was a sister Liberty picked up from the streets. The doorbell rang again just two minutes after they sat down. Sonny went to open the door again. However, he got smarter. He moved a stool to open the door and forbade the adults from following him. Soon, they heard Sonny calling, ¡°Granddad, Grandmom.¡± It was Mr. and Mrs. Brown who came. Mr. Brown carried Sonny inside while Mrs. Brown held the stool Sonny took to boost his height. She said to Liberty while entering, ¡°Liberty, how can you let Sonny open the door? He can¡¯t even reach the doorknob yet. What if he falls when using the stool?¡± Sonny was the Brown family¡¯s only hope to continue the family line. ¡°Did you just start eating?¡± Mrs. Brown saw a lot of seafood ced on the dining table. The prawns and crabs were huge. There would definitely be a lot of meat in the crab pincers. Mrs. Brown was going to say that Liberty was not practical. Only three to four people were eating, yet they bought so much seafood. Did Liberty not know seafood was expensive? The Brown family had not eaten seafood for a long time. Whenever Chelsea went over, she would comin that she could not eat as much seafood as she wanted ever since her sister-inw changed. Jessica hated Chelsea a lot. Hank had allowed Jessica to be in charge of their finances. She could not bear buying seafood for her sister-inw. Jessica once said to Hank, ¡°Buying seafood for your sister just to let her criticize me and drive a wedge between you and me after she had her fill is so unrewarding. I won¡¯t do it.¡± Therefore, Chelsea could never eat seafood like prawns and crabs when visiting her family -even ms were out of discussion. However, Mrs. Brown swallowed her words right away after she saw Zachary. It made sense to have a generous meal prepared as Mr. Zachary was also eating. ¡°What¡¯s your business here?¡± Liberty¡¯s gaze was indifferent. She disliked her ex-husband¡¯s familying over so often. ¡°Liberty, we want Sonny to stay at our ce for some time.¡± Mr. Brown stated their intention immediately as he knew Liberty hated them. Since their new daughter-inw no longer restricted them from getting close to Sonny, Mr. and Mrs. Brown could not wait for another second and went to look for Liberty to pick Sonny up. Chapter 1153 Chapter 1153 Chapter 1153 Liberty kept quiet. Serenity spoke, ¡°You never took care of Sonny before. He¡¯ll not be able to get used to it and cry if you take him to your ce. If you want to visit Sonny, you cane over every day during the daytime and y with him.¡± Mr. Brown said embarrassedly, ¡°Serenity, we didn¡¯t take care of Sonny before, so we¡¯re trying to make up for it now. We¡¯re old and bored at home. If we help your sister to take care of Sonny, she¡¯ll be able to focus on earning money too.¡± He asked the child in his arms next, ¡°Sonny, do you want to follow Granddad and Grandmom home?¡± Sonny asked, ¡°Is Moming?¡± Mr. Brown was stunned. He replied, ¡°Your mom isn¡¯t going, but your dad is in Granddad and Grandmom¡¯s home. Sonny, follow us back and stay with us, okay? That way, your mom won¡¯t be tired as well.¡± Sonny twisted and turned to get down. He ran back to the table, climbed onto his chair, and sat down.¡± want to eat. If Mom isn¡¯t going, I won¡¯t go too. I want Mom!¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were at a loss for words. ¡°Since you two must¡¯ve eaten already, I won¡¯t invite you to have a meal. You can sit on the sofa and watch TV first. We can talk again after we finish eating.¡± Liberty poured a ss of warm water for her former inws. After that, she turned on the TV for them and returned to the table to resume eating with her sister and brother-inw. Mr. Brown smiled sheepishly. ¡°Enjoy your meal. We¡¯ll watch TV.¡± The old couple saw the four bags of fruits ced on the coffee table. They guessed it must have been Serenity and Zachary who bought them. Mrs. Brown whispered enviously, ¡°Serenity has always liked to buy food and drinks for her sister. Now that she¡¯s rich, the quality of the fruits she bought also improved.¡± All the fruits bought were expensive. If Chelsea saw them, she would definitely want to take two or three bags home. Whenever Chelsea came over, she would take fruits that Serenity bought for Liberty when leaving and while Liberty was not paying attention. Using Hank¡¯s words, Chelsea was just like a thief. She liked to return to her family¡¯s house and take things from there. He did not think much of it in the past since Chelsea was his biological sister. Now that he had changed wives, he thought his sister was too much. Mr. Brown turned his head and red at his wife. Mrs. Brown pouted from his stare. She muttered, ¡°Back then, I said we shouldn¡¯t agree to them getting a divorce. I told you not to give her money, but you never listened. If Liberty and Hank didn¡¯t divorce, Serenity¡¯s husband wouldn¡¯t have been so cruel for the sake of Sonny even if their rtionship had turned sour.¡± Their son could have kept his job.This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Mr. Brown said angrily, ¡°Do you think they won¡¯t get a divorce just because you disagree? Hank¡¯s attention isn¡¯t on Liberty anymore, and he doesn¡¯t care about Sonny enough. They treated each other like enemies and always quarreled. It¡¯s not good for Sonny¡¯s growth. ¡°You just want to take advantage and benefit from Serenity marrying into a wealthy family. Our family ended up like this because of our own doing.¡± Mr. Brown med his wife, daughter, and himself. He was the head of the family. If only he had been fairer, things would not have turned out that way. He knew that Liberty was a more suitable partner, but he never took her side whenever his wife or daughter badmouthed her in front of his son. He was not a good person either. Mrs. Brown pouted. Who would not want to benefit from being associated with Serenity? Even something small from Zachary would be enough for an ordinary person to spend for a lifetime. ¡°We¡¯re here tonight to take Sonny to our ce.¡± Mr. Brown sternly reminded his wife not o create unnecessary trouble. They were utterly bored living in their son¡¯s house. Mr. Brown wanted to return to their old home, but Mrs. Brown refused. She insisted on staying in the city with their son and daughter-inw. Chapter 1154 Chapter 1154 Chapter 1154 In Mrs. Brown¡¯s words, her son would not be hers if she returned to her old home. Her son would be under Jessica¡¯splete control. Besides, Hank and Jessica had not held their wedding yet. Jessica said only to hold the wedding after their house renovation was done. She would appear more presentable that way. They were living in a rented house. Jessica¡¯s family would not even have a ce to stay if they were to have a wedding before that. If Mr. and Mrs. Brown could take care of Sonny, they would not be as bored as they were now and could nurture their rtionship with Sonny. After all, Sonny was the Brown family¡¯s only hope of continuing the family line. Jessica was not getting pregnant. They did not even know whether she was fertile or not. Liberty had vegetarian food. She finished her meal in no time. Seeing her former inws whispering to each other, she walked over and took the four bags of fruits her sister and brother-inw brought to the kitchen. A few minutester, she brought out a te filled with only one type of fruit. She did not prepare the other fruits. There were also snacks that Serenity and Elisa bought for Sonny in the house. Liberty took a few of them and put them on the fruit tter. She ced everything on the coffee table for her former inws. ¡°Liberty, your store¡¯s business must be booming, right?¡± Mrs. Brown asked as she ate the fruit freely. ¡°It¡¯s doing fine.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have the time to take care of Sonny because you¡¯re usually busy. Let us take Sonny back to our ce. We¡¯re his grandparents. Are you afraid that we¡¯ll mistreat him? Elderlies like us can definitely take good care of a child. Don¡¯t you worry ¡¯bout a thing.¡± Liberty said calmly, ¡°I spoke to Hank about this before. If Sonny agrees, you can take him away for a short stay. If he¡¯s unwilling, you can¡¯t force him. ¡°Ever since I divorced Sonny¡¯s dad, I never stopped any of you from visiting Sonny. ¡°Isn¡¯t maintaining everything as it is now good enough?¡± When Liberty had just gotten divorced, she wanted to cut off allmunication with her in-ws. However, her ex-mother-inw asked around stalking her, and found her current address. She did not expect her former inws to regret it and keep looking for her every other day. ¡°Sonny already said just now that he doesn¡¯t want to go.¡± Liberty did not want her son to live with the Brown family. Jessica was a scary stepmother. Liberty was worried that Sonny would be abused. ¡°You can persuade Sonny. He¡¯ll agree if you talk to him.¡± Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Liberty looked toward her ex-mother-inw. Her attitude remained cold. ¡°I respect Sonny¡¯s decision.¡± Mrs. Brown was speechless. In the end, Liberty did not want them to take Sonny away. After some time, Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Liberty, Sonny¡¯sst name is Brown. His name is Sonny Brown. He¡¯s the Brown family¡¯s grandson. Taking him back to our ce is simply a matter ¡® of course.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not stopping you guys. I just want you to ask Sonny for his opinion. If he agrees to it, you guys can take him back. If he¡¯s unwilling, I¡¯m fine with you guysing to visit him every day. ¡°Stop emphasizing to me that Sonny¡¯sst name is Brown. I can change hisst name to Hunt anytime.¡± Children taking their mother¡¯sst name was gettingmon. ¡°No! Aren¡¯t we having a discussion now, Liberty? You can¡¯t secretly take Sonny to change hisst name, okay?¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were nervous. They were afraid Liberty would change Sonny¡¯sst name. Although Sonny would still be their grandson even if hisst name were Hunt, they still felt their grandson would belong to the Hunt family if he did not have Brown as hisst name. Chapter 1155 Chapter 1155 Chapter 1155 After Serenity and Zachary were done eating, he said to his wife, ¡°Seren, bring Sonny and sit over there. I¡¯ll collect the dishes.¡± Zachary would do chores at home, so Serenity was used to it. Since Zachary told her to bring Sonny to sit on the sofa, she carried Sonny over and sat beside her sister. After she was seated, three people looked at her. Her sister and her sister¡¯s former inws were staring at her. Serenity was puzzled. ¡°Liberty, why are you guys looking at me like that? Is there food stuck on my face?¡± She touched her face, but there was nothing on it. ¡°Serenity, how can you let Mr. York clean up the dishes and do household chores?¡± Mrs. Brown scolded Serenity. ¡°When a man returns home after working outside for the entire day, you should take care of him properly as his wife. Men will like returning home if you let them feel the warmth of family.¡± Serenity understood why the three of them stared at her. She said, ¡°My sister took good care of your son in the past too. Could he not feel the warmth of family? Or did he dislike going back home because he had another woman?¡± Mrs. Brown was rendered speechless. Serenity set Sonny aside and gave him a lecture. ¡°Sonny, you should learn from Uncle Zak in the future. He¡¯s what it means to be a good man.¡± She added, ¡°My husband¡¯s nana also told me to let my husband do more chores. We own the family together. I¡¯m working too. Why should the wife do all the household chores? Why should the wife be a free housekeeper and serve the whole family? ¡°Zachary and I split the work between ourselves and do household chores together. No one is superior to the other.¡± Mr. and Mrs. Brown were speechless. They honestly did not expect that the great Mr. York would be willing to wash the dishes and do household chores. From a woman¡¯s perspective, Serenity was very fortunate and enviable. After some time, Mrs. Brown reached her hands out to Sonny. ¡°Sonny, let Grandmom carry you, okay?¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°No.¡± Sonny turned his head and was unwilling. He even climbed onto his aunt¡¯sp and sat there. ¡°Sonny, your dad said he¡¯ll bring you to look at tigers at the zoo tomorrow if you follow us back for a short stay. Do you want to go?¡± Going to the zoo had always been on Sonny¡¯s mind. However, he still insisted, ¡°I¡¯ll go if Mom goes.¡± He looked toward Liberty and asked, ¡°Mom, are you going to the zoo tomorrow?¡± ¡°I¡¯m busy in the morning, but I can apany you to the zoo in the afternoon.¡± Sonny said to his grandparents, ¡°I¡¯ll go with Mom.¡± No matter how much Mr. and Mrs. Brown persuaded Sonny, he refused to follow them home. In the end, Mr. and Mrs. Brown left Liberty¡¯s house resignedly. Mrs. Brown regretted that she never came from her old house to help care for Liberty after Sonny was born. She did not help to raise Sonny either, so Sonny was not close to them. Sonny did let them embrace him and called them Granddad and Grandmom. However, whenever they wanted to take him away, he would refuse to follow them. The child was close to whoever raised him. Mr. and Mrs. Brown had been raising their daughter¡¯s children all along. Their daughter¡¯s children were close to them, but they were the Repton family¡¯s grandchildren. Chapter 1156 Chapter 1156 Chapter 1156 Sonny was Mr. and Mrs. Brown¡¯s true grandson. When they returned to their rented house, they saw their son and daughter-inw watching TV. Their expressions did not look good. ¡°Dad, Mom, didn¡¯t you pick Sonny up?¡± Hank stood up and turned toward his parents. He asked that question when he did not see his son. Jessica walked over too. She said, ¡°I organized the smaller room and decorated it into a kid¡¯s room. I bought a lot of toys for Sonny too. Why didn¡¯t you pick him up?¡± Jessica had received a lock of hair and a note from an unknown woman. On it was written that the hair belonged to her mother. It also asked her to carry out the n as soon as possible and bring Sonny to crowded ces like the zoo or a children¡¯s park. If she did not follow that woman¡¯s instructions, the next item sent to her would be two of her mother¡¯s fingers. Jessica was terrified. She counted on her inws to bring Sonny back, but they failed. How could she put her n into action? Mr. and Mrs. Brown went to sit on the sofa. Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Liberty didn¡¯t stop us, but she said we could take Sonny only if he agreed to leave with us. If he disagreed, we couldn¡¯t force him. ¡°Naturally, Sonny refused to follow us back.¡± Hank followed his parents and sat on the sofa. Upon listening to his mother¡¯s words, he said, ¡°Who asked you guys to care for and love Chelsea¡¯s children only in the past? You didn¡¯t even help to raise your grandson. That¡¯s why Sonny isn¡¯t close to you two.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Look who¡¯s talking. We¡¯re Sonny¡¯s grandparents. There¡¯s a generation gap. You¡¯re his father, but have you fulfilled your responsibility as one? Your rtionship with Sonny isn¡¯t deep at all.¡± Mr. Brown had pent-up anger in his chest and happened to have nowhere to vent it, so he retorted the moment Hank startedining about him and his wife. Hank did not dare say another word. ¡°What do we do now?¡± Jessica said. Mrs. Brown looked toward her and snapped, ¡°What can we do? We¡¯ll apany Sonny often from now on. He¡¯s still young. We can still nurture our rtionship with him. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t overthink when Hank visits Sonny in the future. He¡¯s visiting his son, not Liberty. Don¡¯t keep getting jealous.¡± Jessica simply wanted to separate Sonny from Liberty and let that unknown woman get someone to take him away. That way, her mission would bepleted, and her family would be safe. ¡°Mom, I know. Actually, I like Sonny a lot. He¡¯s so pretty and cute. I might even be able to give birth to an adorable child like Sonny,in the future if I look at him every day. ¡°Hank and I will go and pick Sonny up and bring him to the zoo to have fun tomorrow. Is he willing to go?¡± Jessica thought that even if they could not get Sonny toe over for a stay, she could still carry out her n as long as Sonny was willing to y with Hank and her. ¡°Sonny said that he¡¯ll go if his mom is going too. Liberty runs a breakfast business, which only takes up her morning. She can apany Sonny in the afternoon. If you two really want to take Sonny to the zoo, you can pick Sonny and Liberty up after lunch.¡± Jessica did not want Liberty toe along. If Liberty were present, it would not be easy for the people to make their move. While Hank would probably be careless and sometimes neglectful as a father, Liberty was definitely more careful as the mother. She would hug Sonny tightly to her in crowded ces. It would not be easy to do anything. ¡°If Libertyes along, Sonny will refuse to get close to us even more,¡± Jessica muttered as she nced at her husband. Her meaning was clear. She did not want Hank and Liberty to have a chance to go out together. Mr. Brown said, ¡°If you think having Liberty around isn¡¯t good, we¡¯lle with you tomorrow afternoon. Your mom and I have been living in the city for so long, but we¡¯ve never gone out to have fun. We can have a family outing and rx.¡± Chapter 1157 Chapter 1157 Chapter 1157 Jessica pouted and did not say anything else. She turned around, went back to her room, and mmed the door hard. ¡°Darling, darling.¡± Hank called her twice. Mrs. Brown said to her son, ¡°Leave her alone. She just doesn¡¯t want you going on an outing. with Liberty. It¡¯s not like you¡¯re going out with Liberty alone. We¡¯re alling along, but she still chooses to be jealous. ¡°Did she forget that she snatched you from Liberty?¡± . Mrs. Brown disliked Jessica a lot. She used to think that her son was capable. At this moment, she disdained Jessica for being a homewrecker. The Brown family decided to pick up Sonny and Liberty to go to the zoo tomorrow afternoon. The weather was neither too cold nor hot-just lovely for an outing. On the other hand, Serenity and her husband returned home after lingering in her sister¡¯s house for a while. On the way back, she told Zachary, ¡°In the past, the Brown family said they loved Sonny, but those were just empty words. They never lent a hand. My sister and I raised Sonny by ourselves. They never raised Sonny, yet they wanted him to get close to them. What¡¯s this absurdity? ¡°I was the one who took care of my sister after she gave birth. I lost six pounds in that month because of exhaustion.¡± Serenity loved her sister. After her sister gave birth, she never let her do anything and told her to lie down and rest. She brought food to her sister¡¯s room and forbade her to even wash the dishes. She feared her sister would get joint pains if she were in contact with cold water. The month after Liberty gave birth, the newborn Sonny often cried and made a fuss. Sometimes, he would cry for a long time at night and refuse to sleep. Hank had to work, so he moved to the guest room to sleep. As Sonny¡¯s aunt, Serenity had no choice but to carry the crying Sonny and walk around because she wanted to let her sister rest well. She could only rest after Sonny fell asleep. Liberty talked to Hank about asking Mrs. Brown toe over to tend to Sonny during that time. Hank said his parents had to care for Lucas and could not leave. He added that Serenity could take care of her sister and nephew since she was around. ¡°They¡¯re jealous that Sonny is close to me but didn¡¯t think who raised him. Hank always ¡°I just care about my sister and nephew.¡± Zachary held his wife¡¯s hand lovingly. ¡°It would¡¯ve been nice if we knew each other earlier.¡± ¡°If the timing weren¡¯t right, we wouldn¡¯t recognize each other even if we walked past.¡± ¡°They¡¯re trying to get close to Sonny now because they want to ease the tension and improve our rtionship to make me let Hank off the hook. If so, Hank will be able to get a job. They want your sister and Hank to remarry too.¡± Zachary had seen through all of the Brown family¡¯s ns. Serenity figured everything out too. ¡°They can try everything they want, but my sister won¡¯t fall into the same pit twice.¡± Zachary agreed. He thought, ¡®Duncan must¡¯ve not figured out his feelings yet.¡¯ The Brown family kept bothering Liberty-maybe this could aid and encourage Duncan and his sister-in- law to get together. Zachary had long felt that his friend and sister-inw were destined for each other. They would bump into each other frequently. Duncan mentioned that he would always meet Liberty whenever he drove a new luxury car. After that, minor problems would easily arise in his car. Subsequently, whenever he drove a new car and met Liberty by chance, he would park the car far away and walk over to greet her. Zachary and Serenity returned to the vi on the hilltop. However, when they arrived at the gate, an expensive car blocked their road. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Their driver honked and the person in the car moved. He pushed the door open and got out. Then, he walked over in big strides. The driver and Jim, who was in the passenger seat, recognized the person. It was Duncan. Jim turned his head and said to Zachary, ¡°Mr. Zachary, it¡¯s Mr. Lewis.¡± Zachary thought, ¡®I really can¡¯t talk about someone behind their backs. Speak of the devil.¡¯ Chapter 1158 Chapter 1158 Chapter 1158 ¡°Ask him what he wants.¡¯ Did Duncan have nothing better to do than drive a car and block his way in the middle of the night? Jim lowered the window and asked Duncan, who was walking over, ¡°Why are you here, Mr. Lewis?¡± ¡°Zachary¡¯s in the car, right? Zachary, I want to stay at your ce for some time. I¡¯ve already brought my luggage. However, Sam said he could not make the decisions and didn¡¯t let me enter. I had no choice but to wait for you here.¡± Zachary was speechless. If Duncan were not an old friend, he would have asked the driver to step on the gas and hit the car blocking the way. Serenity was surprised. Seeing her husband¡¯s dark expression, she asked Duncan, ¡°You want to move here, Mr. Lewis? Why?¡± ¡°That woman keeps staying in my house and refuses to leave. She knows the address of the other houses I own too. She¡¯ll be able to find me no matter where I stay. It¡¯s annoying. I have no choice but to bring my luggage and trouble you two.¡± The woman Duncan spoke of was Lily Harmon. Lily was the most suitable daughter-inw candidate in Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes. Most importantly, Lily did not mind the scar on Duncan¡¯s face. Therefore, Mrs. Lewis was trying her best to get them to be together. Duncan did not want to return to Westwood Manor, so Mrs. Lewis brought Lily to a vi owned by her son. Duncan¡¯s mother knew how many properties he owned. He could not avoid it, so he was going to use Zachary as a shield again. He packed a few sets of clothes and came rushing to Zachary with his luggage. Although Duncan was dense, he knew he was disturbing his friend¡¯s romantic time with his wife by coming over. However, no one but Zachary¡¯s name could help him to block Lily. Josh could not as well. If Josh could help Duncan to block Lily, Duncan would have moved in and stayed with him. Josh would probably think he dodged the bullet if he knew what was going on. Serenity nced at her man. She said to Duncan with a smile, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you can drive your car inside or move it first. We can resume talking after we get inside.¡± Zachary said with a darkened face, ¡°I¡¯ll let you stay in Seaview Vi.¡± Duncan immediately said, ¡°Seaview Vi is too far. It takes two hours to get to the seaside from the city by car. It¡¯s inconvenient for me to go to work.¡± ¡°Babe.¡± Serenity said gently, ¡°Babe, let¡¯s talk after letting Mr. Lewis in.¡± Zachary let out a hmph. ¡°Old third-wheeler.¡± Serenity and Duncan were speechless. Duncan resigned to the fact that he was a third-wheeler. He was thirty-six years old. Well, he would be considered oldpared to those in their twenties. He had simply epted himself as an old third- wheeler. However, Zachary was not a young man in his twenties either. He was in his early thirties. Duncan was only five years older than Zachary. Although Zachary was unhappy, he still let Duncan move into his vi. The romantic set-up Zachary decorated for his wife was still there. Duncan entered the house after the couple with his luggage in tow. When he saw the interior of the house, he stopped. He suspected he hade to the wrong ce. Was this Zachary¡¯s house? It was decorated nicely with a romantic atmosphere. Duncan did not think an iceberg like Zachary had a romantic side to him. Duncan touched his nose. He could not me his friend for not letting him inside his house anymore. He was really a third wheel.Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1159 Chapter 1159 Chapter 1159 Zachary owned many properties. He and Serenity usually lived in the vi on the hilltop and their house in Brynfield. These two houses were near their workces, which made it convenient tomute. Duncan did not want to travel far for work, so he had no choice but to brazenly stay with Zachary for some time. ¡°Zachary, did you n all these?¡± Duncan asked his friend, who had a dark expression. ¡°It¡¯s decorated so nicely, like a proposal or a wedding setup. You can have the same design as this when you and Serenity hold your wedding. It¡¯ll surely impress many women.¡± Zachary snapped, ¡°Who else could it be if not me? You?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have such a high EQ to think of these ideas to make women happy.¡± Zachary red at him. ¡°Of course you don¡¯t. The only thing you know is to collect money.¡± Duncan asked, ¡°What money did I collect?¡± Zachary did not exin further. Duncan was puzzled. Serenity poured a ss of warm water each for the two guys. She was about to go and prepare some fruits. Zachary pulled his wife to sit beside him. He said, ¡°Honey, just ignore him. Hees here often and is more familiar with this vi than you are. He can help himself to whatever he wants to eat.¡± ¡°That¡¯s right, Serenity. Don¡¯t bother about me. I¡¯m familiar with this ce.¡± Duncan did not dare let Serenity serve him. His friend¡¯s face had been as dark as charcoal ever since he saw him. It was as if his face was covered in ayer of soot. ¡°What happened? Lily hasn¡¯t left yet?¡± Zachary asked his friend with a cold expression. ¡°She hasn¡¯t. I don¡¯t know how long she intends to stay. My mom likes her a lot. She calls me every few days to ask me to go shopping with Lily and buy her a meal. I refused all of them with the excuse that I was busy. ¡°However, my mom brought her to live in my vi. She¡¯s my mother, so I can¡¯t chase them out. Since they¡¯re not budging, I left.¡± Duncan sounded aggrieved. He was probably the man who was most pestered to get married in the whole world. Unfortunately, it was his mom nagging him to get married. He could not do anything to her. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Lily was thick-skinned too. No matter how Duncan acted, she would apany his mom happily. Lily also managed to please his mom to the point he lost his mom¡¯s favor. She listened to everything Lily said. Duncan knew Lily was the vice president of Harmon Corporation. She was a strong woman. Harmon Corporation and Lewis & Co. were equally excellent. Although they were not in the same city, he obtained detailed information about Harmon Corporation because of Lily. His mom must have taken a liking to Lily not only because she was old friends with Mrs. Harmon but also because she had her eye on the Harmon family¡¯s wealth and status. ¡°If you want Ms. Harmon to leave, then it¡¯s simple-bring a woman home.¡± Duncan¡¯s face fell. ¡°Who can I bring back? You know I¡¯m single. I¡¯ve never met a woman I¡¯m attracted to-someone I want to marry and protect. I keep thinking my woman isn¡¯t born yet. ¡°Maybe I¡¯ll have to wait about twenty more years to meet her and end my life as a single guy.¡± Zachary and Serenity were speechless. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ll just stay here for a few days. I don¡¯t believe Lily won¡¯t leave after a few days.¡± Duncan said brazenly, ¡°I can pay rent. Just treat it as if I¡¯m renting your ce.¡± Zachary said with a glum face, ¡°You even brought your luggage-what else can I say? You can stay here as long as you want. Serenity and I will move back to Brynfield tomorrow.¡± Chapter 1160 Chapter 1160 Chapter 1160 Duncan said embarrassedly, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Zachary.¡± ¡°Go to a hotel if you¡¯re ashamed.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not. It¡¯s not my first time having a short stay in your house. Josh and I often stayed over in the past. We would always do so when we drank too much or it was toote.¡± Zachary was speechless. He pulled his wife to stand up with him and said coldly, ¡°You can stay in the guest room that¡¯s furthest from the master bedroom. Rest early.¡± After that, he went upstairs with Serenity. Zacharyined when they returned to their room, ¡°When have I be Duncan¡¯s shield? Has my ce turned into a shelter for him?¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°Mr. Lewis only came to stay for a few days because he had no other choice. You two have been friends for so many years.¡± ¡°He didn¡¯t run out of choices. He¡¯s just using me as a shield. He doesn¡¯t have a low EQ because he was aware of Lily¡¯s feelings for him. But he doesn¡¯t have a high EQ either. He bought Sonny a few sets of clothes and collected money from your sister afterward.¡± Serenity stepped forward and hugged her husband. He enjoyed her taking the initiative to hug him. Even the sound of hisints became softer. ¡°Maybe Mr. Lewis really just adores Sonny and doesn¡¯t have feelings for my sister.¡± They could have been looking at Duncan and her sister with preconceived ideas. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren, a man won¡¯t treat a woman well out of the blue. If he did, then he definitely has some interest in that said woman.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis is very nice to Sonny.¡± Zachary chuckled and did not give further justifications. His nana had proven it-either Duncan had not realized his feelings yet, or he was pretending. Zachary thought it was most likely the former. Duncan must have truly thought he was treating Liberty well because of Sonny. He liked Sonny. ¡°Even if Mr. Lewis is interested in my sister, I rather hope he doesn¡¯t like my sister. I know Mrs. Lewis has already chosen her daughter-inw and that Ms. Harmon is a good match for Mr. Lewis in terms of social status. ¡°Not to mention, my sister doesn¡¯t intend to get married again. Even if she does, she probably won¡¯t consider Mr. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lewis was not as open-minded as Serenity¡¯s mother-inw. Tania thought she was not good enough for Zachary but respected his decision and choice. She also never bothered her or gave her an attitude. She was nice to her daughter-in w. Some people were dissatisfied with Serenity helping Camryn during the Dowlings¡¯ banquet. They called Tania and tried to drive a wedge between them but they were scolded by Tania instead. Serenity heard about it from Old Mrs. York. Otherwise, she would not have known that her mother-inw was so protective. Old Mrs. York said that Serenity was the York family¡¯s missus. Whether she did well or not, it was not the outsiders¡¯ ce to criticize her. In other words, family members could criticize Serenity, but outsiders were not allowed to badmouth her at all. Serenity truly liked the open-mindedness and protectiveness of the York family¡¯s adults. ¡°If Duncan realizes that he likes Liberty, we can just watch from the sides and do nothing. Duncan is an assertive person. Ever since he left his family¡¯s control and established Lewis & Co., he¡¯s been taking charge of his life.¡± ¡°The elders of the Lewis family won¡¯t be able to control him. If he genuinely likes Liberty, and as long as she¡¯s willing to face everything with him, they¡¯ll be able to be together until the end. No matter how difficult Mrs. Lewis is, she can¡¯t do anything to Duncan.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis can¡¯t do anything to Mr. Lewis, but she¡¯ll target my sister.¡± Serenity sighed. ¡°When my sister was with the Browns, she had enough of her mother-in-w¡¯s criticisms. If she gets married again and her mother-inw is harsh on her¡­ I¡¯ll feel bad for her.¡± She wanted her sister to find happiness. However, she was also afraid her sister would meet another terrible mother-inw. Chapter 1161 Chapter 1161 Chapter 1161 Zachary consoled his wife, ¡°Don¡¯t read too much into it. I believe things will only get better for your sister.¡± After much thought, Serenity uttered, ¡°That¡¯s true. I don¡¯t see sparks going on between my sister and Mr. Lewis. I guess whatever happens, happens. As you said, Mr. Lewis is his own. person. He takes control of his own life¡¯ I trust he¡¯ll make my sister happy if he sees her that way.¡± ¡°Yeah, whatever happens, happens. We don¡¯t want to get ahead of ourselves.¡± Zachary grabbed her a fresh set of clothes. ¡°Go and take a bath.¡± Serenity took the clothes and kissed him on the face before going into the bathroom. Half an hourter, the coupley in bed, chatting about their day. ¡°Honey, when are youing with me to social events?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°When do you need a plus-one for social engagements?¡± Serenity believed the trial runs with her aunt at social parties had built up her confidence. Well, she also had Zachary to thank as he had given her a lot of support too. It would not be much of a problem to apany him to business dinners now. At least, she would not freeze up during the social interaction. She could walk like ady in heels. With Aunt Audrey taking Serenity under her wing, Serenity learned everything she needed to know. Aunt Audrey was forting with her knowledge. Elisa could not be bothered with the whole nine yards in social etiquette, but so long as she was willing to learn, Aunt Audrey was more than ready to pass down decades of experience to her. Mrs. Stone hoped her nieces could be strong and independent women. Elisa was born into privilege where her father and brothers had her back all the way. It did not matter if she became strong or independent because no one would step on her toes. Nevertheless, Mrs. Stone¡¯s nieces were a different story. These girls had to secure their footing in society to earn respect from others. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. ¡°I have deals to close every day. We¡¯re upied with our own things during the day, so I won¡¯t take up your time then. I¡¯ll take you to evening social engagements that I find right for you.¡± Some venues where men talked business were not proper for women. Zachary did not want to take his wife to these ces. ¡°Alright. Tell me when you need me. It¡¯s time I carry out my duties as Mrs. York.¡± With a smile, Zachary lowered his head and kissed her lips before dotingly saying, ¡°I¡¯m sure my wife will pass with flying colors. Have a rest, honey.¡± Pulling Serenity into his arms, Zachary gave her a tight squeeze and let go of her. He tenderly uttered, ¡°I won¡¯t touch you tonight. You can enjoy a nice sleep. No need to tense up.¡± Zachary practiced self-restraint when it came to the couple¡¯s intimacy. He would not go too far. Last night was the only time he got carried away. He must have scared her. Heaving a sigh of relief in secret, Serenity sweetly mewed, ¡°Goodnight, babe.¡±. Zachary brushed his lips against her forehead. ¡°Goodnight, honey. Sweet dreams.¡± Serenity smiled. Since the day the couple kissed and made up, Serenity¡¯s reality was as sweet as her dreams. The following day, Duncan went downstairs to find his best friend wearing an apron and making breakfast in the kitchen. That was a real eye-opener for Duncan. He teased Zachary, ¡°Zachary, you always boast to Josh and me about having a wife, saying that married men are different because your wife cooks for you every day. Youe home to a warm home after a hard day of work. ¡°Well, it can also be quite the opposite.¡± Zachary turned around and gave Duncan a look before going back to searing his steak. Chapter 1162 Chapter 1162 Chapter 1162 ¡°Married men are different. You cook for yourself, but I¡¯m cooking for me and my wife. It¡¯s sheer happiness to watch my wife eat my food. It¡¯s the type of happiness you single people will not understand. ¡°Even a nice lobster won¡¯t taste as good as when you¡¯re having a meal alone. The simplest food tastes delicious when I eat with my wife. It¡¯s just notparable.¡± Duncan replied, ¡°That¡¯s a new way of looking at men who cook. You¡¯re talking as if those who never cooked a day in their lives will never find happiness. I can¡¯t cook like you, but I can find a wife who does. The results are still the same.¡± Zachary said, ¡°Are you looking for a wife or a cook?¡± Stumped, Duncan changed the topic. ¡°Make me one too.¡± ¡°Do it yourself. You should practice and gain experience. I can guarantee your future wife will be happy if you cook her a steak. It¡¯s romancing her.¡± Duncan pursed her lips. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯m a guest in your home.¡± ¡°An uninvited guest who won¡¯t leave is not a guest. You can ask the chefs if you don¡¯t want to do it yourself. They can start on your breakfast once I¡¯m done.¡± While Zachary was hogging the kitchen, the chefs were chatting away with the gardeners in the yard. ¡°Fine, fine. I¡¯ll do it myself. Do you think I can¡¯t cook? I¡¯ve learned a lot being out there in the world, you know.¡± Duncan started from the bottom back when he was on the other side of thew. It wasmon for the henchman to be on kitchen duty to serve the boss. After making his wife a sumptuous and nutritious breakfast, Zachary went into the garden to cut a bunch of blooming roses. He trimmed the edges and wrapped the red roses into a bouquet. He put the bouquet on Serenity¡¯s seat before going upstairs to wake her. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Watching everything Zachary did for Serenity, Duncan secretly snapped a photo and sent it to their mutual best friend, Josh. Duncan even attached a message: [Take notes, boy.] Josh was quick to reply: [Shouldn¡¯t you watch and learn? I¡¯m a natural when ites to romance. Zachary is taking notes from me. I¡¯m his love guru.] Duncan grinned. ¡°Oh, right. Josh has the highest EQ.¡± Josh and Jasmine¡¯s love life had been smooth sailing without any turbulence. ¡°Duncan, why are you at Zachary¡¯s ce?¡± Josh sent a voice note. ¡°I¡¯m here to take cover.¡± Josh sent a LOL emoji. Needless to say, the pressure from Duncan¡¯s mother for him to get married forced him to seek refuge at Zachary¡¯s home. Duncan was speechless. Slipping the phone back into his pocket, Duncan began eating his steak. Hmm¡­ It tasted fine. Duncan had no problem eating alone. He could not experience the happiness Zachary was talking about. Nevertheless, Zachary and his wife soon opened Duncan¡¯s eyes to the joy of married life. With Zachary and Serenity unting their love during breakfast, Duncan lost his appetite. He wanted to get a taste of Zachary¡¯s steak as Serenity ate with great gusto. From then on, Duncan decided never to have breakfast with the couple. They enjoyed a great feast, but he did not-oh wait, all he had was an unwee visual feast. The couple went out hand-in-hand for a stroll after breakfast. Zachary used to get to the office first thing in the morning. Now, he was no longer in a rush to leave. Holding a mug of coffee, Duncan stood at the door and watched as the young couple held hands and sharedughter and talk, roaming a distance away. For once, loneliness was getting to Duncan. Should he consider entering the next big phase of his life? Chapter 1163 Chapter 1163 Chapter 1163 Duncan was passing by All You Can Eat at eight o¡¯clock when he stopped the car. He paused for a moment before getting out of the car. Halfway out, Duncan was struck by a thought and retraced his steps. He unlocked the car and retrieved one of many boxes from the backseat. It was a box of Legos. He was fond of Sonny, so he bought a lot of toys and stashed them in his car. That way, he would have something for Sonny every time he dropped by the diner. It went without saying that his trips to the diner were for the boy and not Liberty. Duncan used to give Sonny pinwheels, but the boy had grown out of them. That was why he bought new toys. With a box of Legos in hand, Duncan stepped into All You Can Eat. ¡°Morning, Mr. Lewis.¡± Seeing that Duncan entered through the door, Liberty greeted him with a smile and asked, ¡± Same order?¡± ¡°Yes. The same old.¡± Duncan believed breakfast at his buddy¡¯s ce did not fill his belly. With his workload heavy in the morning, how could he go on on an empty stomach? Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. It was best if he had another meal at Liberty¡¯s ce. ¡°Sonny.¡± Spotting Sonny drawing behind the cash register, Duncan made his way there and handed the box of Lego to Sonny. He ingratiatingly said, ¡°Sonny, this is my gift for you today.¡± Sonny had grown ustomed to getting gifts from Dunc. He took the Lego and thanked Duncan. ¡°Open it up. I can help you with the Lego build.¡± Sonny opened the box and poured out the bricks. It was a set for a robot. It was difficult for Sonny¡¯s age to aplish such an intricate build. However, Sonny was into Lego bricks. The boy could be at it the whole day when given a box of Legos. He would explore the bricks on his own. Duncan had his reason to give Sonny a build that was not quite for his age. He could jump in and y with Sonny since the boy was too young to finish the build all by himself. It was a great way to bond while building bricks with Sonny. By then, Sonny would warm up to Duncan. At least, Duncan could finally get his hugs. ¡°Mr. Lewis, Sonny has a lot of toys. Stop buying him more.¡± Seeing that Duncan had given Sonny another toy, Liberty helplessly uttered, ¡°He has enough toys to open a toy shop.¡± She nced at the Lego while set on her way to serve a customer. ¡°The set is too hard for Sonny right now.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. He can take his time. I can help him when I¡¯m free,¡± Duncan said and sat behind the cash register to lend Sonny a hand. Once Liberty made his breakfast, Duncan dug in while guiding Sonny to assemble the bricks. ¡°How¡¯s business?¡± Duncan asked. Now that the morning rush had eased, Liberty could take a breather and answered with a smile, ¡°You can tell how busy we are when you pass by every morning. The morning rush really runs us off our feet. We only have time to tidy up and go home for a rest after the people who get off their night shifts are done.¡± Those on the graveyard shift would often finish their meals at about nine o¡¯clock in the morning. Liberty and two employees would start tidying up and cleaning around ten o¡¯clock. By the time they finished the tasks, lunchtime would roll around. Liberty was upied the whole morning. ¡°You cameter than usual today.¡± Duncan would usually turn up at the diner at a little past seven o¡¯clock. Chapter 1164 Chapter 1164 Chapter 1164 ¡°I was upte today.¡± Duncan lied. He did not tell Liberty that he had breakfast at his buddy¡¯s ce and it was just not quite enough. The loving couple had him lose his appetite, but now that they were out of sight, the hunger caught up to him, so Duncan had to drop by Liberty¡¯s diner to fill his belly. Seeing that Duncan was showing her son the ropes in the middle of breakfast, Liberty drew close, sat next to her son, and said, ¡°I¡¯ll help you, Sonny.¡± She picked up the assembly instruction for a look and stared at the pile of bricks, feeling at headache coming. Oops. It seemed Lego bricks were not quite her thing. Serenity was good at it though. She was nifty with her hands at crafting, so Lego bricks were not a problem for her. With a customer entering the diner, Liberty put down the assembly instruction and told her son, ¡°Take your time, Sonny. I¡¯ll be right with you.¡± ¡°Mom, you don¡¯t know how to do it, but Dunc does.¡± Sonny was attached to Duncan when they assembled Lego bricks together as Duncan had a knack for it. ¡°Do you want toe with meter? You can assemble the bricks over at my ce, and i can teach you if you get stuck.¡± Sonny pondered the offer before asking, ¡°Will my mom go too?¡± ¡°Your mom is busy, so she can¡¯te along.¡± Sonny declined. ¡°I won¡¯t go if Mom doesn¡¯t go.¡± Running his fingers along the little man¡¯s hair with affection, Duncan said to Liberty, ¡°Sonny has his guard up.¡± Liberty smiled. A whileter, Duncan finally ate his fill. Although he was tempted to stay and help Sonny build a robot, his schedule was packed. He told his secretary to push his itinerary into the afternoons so he could spend a bit of time at Liberty¡¯s diner in the mornings. ¡°Liberty, I sent the money via Apple Pay.¡± Rising to his feet, Duncan said to Liberty and to Sonny, ¡°I got to go to work now, Sonny. We¡¯ll pick this up once I¡¯m off.¡± ¡°Bye, Dunc.¡± Sonny was a lot nicer now that he received Lego from Duncan. At least, he was saying goodbye to Duncan without being told. Duncan gently pinched Sonny¡¯s little face. Oh, the boy was adorable. If only he could nibble on the face. After a quick chat with Liberty, Duncan was on his way out. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. He was walking to his car when the person inside the car parked next to his wound down the window. The person greeted him with a smile. ¡°Duncan.¡± It was Lily. That ruined Duncan¡¯s mood. He went up to her with puckered brows and asked, ¡°What brings you here, Ms. Harmon?¡± ¡°I made you breakfast, but you didn¡¯te homest night, so I went to your office. I thought I was seeing things when I saw your car parked here.¡± Lily was forting about the reason she was here. Fixing her gaze on the breakfast ce Duncan came out of, she asked, ¡°Duncan, is the food good at that ce? Is the hygiene at the breakfast diner up to standard?¡± She was not one to dine at a small business like that. The hygiene upkeep would be atrocious for all she knew. Nevertheless, Lily understood that Duncan was ungant andid-back as he had mingled with alternative crowds before. Duncan was happy to get a meal from a food truck, much less a diner. ¡°The hygiene is definitely up to standard, and there¡¯s a health permit to prove it.¡± Duncan did not divulge to Lily that Liberty owned All You Can Eat. Chapter 1165 Chapter 1165 Chapter 1165 Duncan¡¯s mother had mentioned Liberty to Lily before. Lily was most focused on Serenity though, as she wanted to get into Mrs. York¡¯s good graces. Nevertheless, Duncan was certain that Lily kept an eye on Liberty since Liberty was Mrs. York¡¯s sister. ¡°I own the space and rent it out,¡± Duncan added in case Lily thought he was standing up the restaurant owner. Lily smiled. ¡°No wonder you have breakfast there. You own the ce.¡± for ¡°I¡¯m full. I can¡¯t eat anymore. Ms. Harmon, thank you for the breakfast, but I don¡¯t need it.¡± Thest thing Duncan wanted was to take Lily to the office. Lily uttered with a smile, ¡°I¡¯ll bring it backter. I want to get a tour of your office, Duncan. I didn¡¯t just come to Wiltspoon for this. I¡¯m here to talk business with a few major corporations too.¡± The Harmons operated their business on arge scale. Mrs. Lewis was hoping to have a union with the Harmons while Lily wanted to prate Wiltspoon¡¯s market by having business ties with major corporations like Lewis & Co. Not only could Lily bring profit to Harmon Corporation, but she could also bond with Duncan over the business coboration. The way she saw it, although Duncan may be a brusque man, he had a delicate side to him. Lily would find her happy-ever-after with Duncan if she could conquer his heart. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Having dwelled in the business world for many years, Lily loved a challenge, and the conquest for Duncan¡¯s heart summoned her interest and gave her great motivation. Since Lily wanted to visit Lewis & Co. under the guise of a tour, Duncan was not in the position to turn her down. She was the daughter of his mother¡¯s best friend after all. Duncan got into his car and hit the elerator, driving away pretty fast. Lily quickly went in pursuit of his car. In the diner, Liberty had no idea what had happened outside. Not long after Duncan left, the Browns paraded into the diner. The whole circus was here, including Chelsea, her husband, and Lucas. Mrs. Brown called everybody to the city so they could take a trip to the zoo. Lucas was supposed to attend kindergarten, but now that he was away from his grandparents¡¯ care, he often fell ill. Since he was sick again, Chelsea took him out of school for two days to see his grandparents. Jessica was not too happy about so manying along to the zoo. On second thought, the Browns invited themselves. The heat would be taken off Jessica, as the stepmother, if the kidnapping n was a sess. It would be the Brown family¡¯s fault for not having a closer eye on Sonny. ¡°Sonny.¡± Seeing that Sonny was ying with Lego, Lucas let go of his mother¡¯s hand, ran, climbed up the stool like a monkey, and sat next to Sonny. ¡°What are you ying with, Sonny? I want to have a go.¡± The familiar voice pushed Sonny to stuff all the unassembled Lego bricks back into the box. By the time Lucas sat next to him, Sonny had packed away all the things. Sonny clung to the box and replied, ¡°Dunc gave me Lego.¡± ¡°I want to y with Lego too.¡± Lucas put his hand out to grab Sonny¡¯s bricks. Leaning to one side, Sonny dodged Lucas¡¯s grubby hands. He jumped off the stool and took cover by his mother¡¯s side. Lucas always took his stuff and picked on him. There was no way Sonny would want to y with Lucas. Although his mother and aunt¡¯s love and concern helped Sonny move past the trauma at the Reptons¡¯ last year, Sonny had never forgotten about the incident. Chapter 1166 Chapter 1166 Chapter 1166 ¡°Mom, Sonny has a toy, and he¡¯s not letting me y with it. I want a toy, Mom! I want Sonny¡¯s toy!¡± Lucas took quick paces to his mother and tugged on Chelsea¡¯s clothes, demanding Sonny¡¯s toy. Chelsea always thought the world of her children while other people¡¯s children could suck it. Putting her hand out at Sonny, she said, ¡°Sonny, hand over your toy.¡± ¡°This is mine!¡± Sonnytched onto the Lego box like glue. Chelsea went ahead to pull the toy off of Sonny when Liberty grabbed a kitchen utensil and pped it on Chelsea¡¯s wrist. The pain caused Chelsea to recoil her arm. ¡°What are you doing, Liberty?¡± Liberty put on a sour face. ¡°I should be asking you that. That is Sonny¡¯s toy. He can decide whether he wants to share it with Lucas. Why are you taking the toy from a child?¡± Chelsea was lost for words. With a scowl, Mr. Brown gave his daughter a dressing down. Once Chelsea pulled her son to a corner, Mr. Brown apologetically said, ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s fine if Sonny doesn¡¯t want to share. It¡¯s his toy anyway.¡± ¡°Why are all of you here?¡± Liberty nced at the family and asked. Hank jumped in. ¡°Didn¡¯t my parents tell youst night? We¡¯re taking Sonny to the zoo to see the tigers today.¡± He then asked his son, ¡°Sonny, do you want to go to the zoo with Dad?¡± With sparkling eyes, Sonny inquired, ¡°Is Mom going too, Dad?¡± Hank nced at Liberty before replying with a smile, ¡°Mom is going too.¡± ¡°Liberty, you should close shop early today. We can have breakfast at yours and set out to the zoo. It¡¯s an hour¡¯s journey to the zoo, so we must leave early. The children can enjoy more time there.¡± Wiltspoon Zoo was huge and home to many animals. Hank had gone to the zoo once on a weekend when he first started dating Liberty. Serenity was still a teenager back then, and she tagged along. Liberty was going to let her son go on the zoo trip with her former inws. Nevertheless, she changed her mind when her eyes fell on Lucas. She was worried that Lucas might pick on Sonny if she did not go along. Getting to her son¡¯s eye level, Liberty asked, ¡°Do you want to go, Sonny?¡± Sonny blurted, ¡°I want to go, Mom. I want to go with Mom and Dad to the zoo.¡± He looked at Jessica, unable to fathom why thisdy was always around his father. Mom always stood by Dad in the past. Hank persuaded, ¡°Come on, Liberty. We¡¯ve never taken our son to the zoo. Let¡¯s go together. Sonny has been wanting to see the tigers.¡±This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Mr. and Mrs. Brown echoed their son¡¯s idea, trying to convince Liberty to join the family trip. Truth be told, Liberty was not interested in going out with her ex-husband¡¯s family. Nevertheless, she did not want to put a damper on her son¡¯s idea of fun. She faintly uttered, ¡°I can leave after the customers are finished with their meals.¡± Seeing that Mom had given the green light, Sonny leaped in joy and then proceeded to urge his mother, ¡°Phone Aunt Ser, Mom! Tell Aunt Ser to join us!¡± The Browns were speechless. The only son of the Brown family did not forget to include his aunt in everything. ¡°I don¡¯t know if your aunt has the time,¡± Liberty said. Still, she listened to her son and gave Serenity a call. It would be nice for Liberty if her sister came along. At least, she would not feel awkward going on the trip with her ex-husband¡¯s family. Chapter 1167 Chapter 1167 hapter 1167 Serenity took a ride in her man¡¯s Roll Royce to the shop. She had just collected the craft goods from the crafters she hired. After examining the quality, Serenity complimented her employees on a good job and paid them based on the agreed rate. ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s good money since we¡¯re only working on crafts when we take a break from caring for the kids. Our families are pretty supportive. You know what? My mother¨Cinw stopped giving me an attitude.¡± This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. ¡°Me too. My mother¨Cinw is now looking after my child for me. I was shocked that she was happy to do it for me. Serenity, you can ept more orders. We are more than able to finish the task.¡± They ventured into the world of crafting together. Although there had not been a lot of contact among thedies, they had always kept in touch. Thedies were well aware of Serenity¡¯s position in society now too. Of course, they were envious. However, Serenity gave them a job and paid every time they handed in the crafts. It was a lucrative job for stay¨Cat¨Chome mothers like them. If that was not enough, their boss was Mrs. York. Their inws were nicer to them, knowing that they were working for Mrs. York but it was mainly because they could contribute financially to the family. Serenity uttered with a smile, ¡°I had a pile of orders to fulfill before the new year, and the pile built up after I hurt my hand. It was a good thing youdies came to save the day. I¡¯ll bring you more supplies and the sample products of the orders.¡± ¡°Sure, sure.¡± The lot was over the moon to get immediate payment after delivering the goods. Serenity got the materials ready and distributed them to thedies before seeing them out. She then contacted the courier service to pick up the items. The orders could finally be dispatched to the customers. Once she made the phone call, Serenity received a call from her sister. ¡°Liberty.¡± ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny took the phone from his mother the moment the line was connected. His voice could be heard over the phone. ¡°I¡¯m Sonny, Aunt Ser.¡± Serenity answered with a smile, ¡°I know I recognize that voice. Do you miss me? I told your Aunt Elisa to pick you up on her way here.¡± Since Elisa said she wasing in the morning, Serenity asked if she could do the pick¨Cup to save Serenity the trip. Elisa was happy to do it. ¡°Aunt Ser, Dad is taking me and Mom to the zoo. A lot of people are going. Do you want toe, Aunt Ser?¡± Sonny asked Serenity. Hearing that Aunt Elisa was picking him up, he told Serenity, ¡°I should ask Aunt Elisa if she wants to join us too.¡± Hank was at a loss for words. All he wanted was to take his son to the zoo and have a nice father¨Cand¨Cson day out, not a group trip. Never mind his mom called his sister¡¯s family toe along, but Sonny was asking his aunt and Ms. Stone for the trip too. How was he supposed to bond with Sonny? Jessica scowled. She had no problems with Serenitying along. In fact, Jessica was delighted as Serenity would rescue Sonny at all costs. Those people could lure Serenity to see that mystery woman. In return, Jessica wouldplete the mission and save her family. Nevertheless, Jessica was displeased that Sonny wanted to add Elisa to the mix. Elisa came from a prominent family. Even if Ms. Stone was without security when out and about, the woman was not one to be messed with. Jessica was irritated. Although her family was fine right now, Jessica knew that they were being watched. A chunk of her mother¡¯s hair was chopped off because those people barged into her mother¡¯s home in broad daylight and subdued her mother to cut her hair. She had asked her mother who these people were, and the answer was that they were big men in ck masks and sunsses. Mrs. Yates could not get a look at their faces, and everything happened so fast. Before she knew it, Mrs. Yates had lost a chunk of her hair. The group of men then swiftly left. Chapter 1168 Chapter 1168 Chapter 1168 Sure, Jessica¡¯s mother only lost a chunk of hair, but it was enough to scare the hell out of Jessica. It would not take much for these people toe after her family¡¯s lives. Although Jessica was not on good terms with her family due to the bridal gift, this was her family. She could not allow anything to happen to her family just to save an outsider like Sonny. Today looked most promising to carry out the n. Serenity asked, ¡°Is your mom going?¡± ¡°Yeah. Mom¡¯s going. Are you going, Aunt Ser?¡± After much thought, Serenity replied, ¡°What time are you leaving? I¡¯ll see if I can make the time.¡± ¡°Mom said we can leave in about half an hour. Aunt Ser, please go with us. I want to see the tigers in the zoo.¡± Sonny had been wanting to go to the zoo since thest time. However, it did not happen because the boyter chose to go out with his aunt. The zoo was still a magical ce for the boy. Now that he had the chance today, he really, really wanted to go. ¡°Alright then. I¡¯ll go too.¡± Serenity could not put up with the idea of an outing with the Browns, but she was more concerned about her sister. The Browns changed their minds though. They were trying to spend some time with Sonny and fight for his custody. The whole family was in on this. With her sister going there alone, what were the chances she could win against a big group of them? Although Serenity was only one person, she was lucky to marry Zachary. Her social status should be enough to intimidate the Brown family. At least the Browns would think twice before doing her sister dirty when Serenity joined the outing too. Sonny gleefully uttered, ¡°Hurry up ande here, Aunt Ser. I see Aunt Elisa. I¡¯ll ask her if she wants to go too. Hurry here, Aunt Ser. I¡¯m hanging up now.¡± Serenity dotingly said, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll be right there.¡± Sonny returned the phone to his mother and ran out. Elisa had gotten out of the car when her nephew came running in her direction. Before she could say anything, the boy drew close and clung to her leg. Lifting his chin, Sonny cried, ¡± Aunt Elisa.¡± The handsome and cute face could melt Elisa¡¯s heart. Bending over, Elisa picked Sonny up and said with a smile, ¡°You must miss me since you ran out to wee me.¡± ¡°I miss you, Aunt Elisa. I miss you and Aunt Ser every day. I need to tell you something, Aunt Elisa.¡± With Sonny in her arms, Elisa took strides to the diner and asked with a grin, ¡°Oh, really? What do you need to tell me?¡± ¡°Dad is taking me and Mom to the zoo. I asked Aunt Ser, and she¡¯s going too. Do you want to go, Aunt Elisa? Let¡¯s go together.¡± Elisa raised a brow. So Hank would like to take Liberty and Sonny to the zoo? Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Elisa scowled upon entering the diner and seeing the Brown family there. She asked, ¡± Liberty, did they do anything to you?¡± ¡°Ms. Stone, we¡¯re here to ask Liberty and Sonny to go for a family trip. We don¡¯t mean any harm.¡± Hank jumped in to exin. He was afraid of Elisa. Serenity had be Mrs. York, but she was once Hank¡¯s sister¨Cinw, so she did not strike fear in Hank. In fact, the Hunt sisters would not give the Browns much of an attitude for the sake of Sonny. Chapter 1169 Chapter 1169 Chapter 1169 Elisa looked at Liberty. Once she was sure that the Browns were here to go on a family trip with Liberty and Sonny, Elisa¡¯s straight face softened into a smile. The smile was for Sonny, not for the Brown family. The sight of the Browns made Elisa sick to her stomach. ¡°Since you want to go to the zoo, I¡¯ll go with you, Sonny.¡± Elisa readily said yes to her nephew¡¯s invitation. It had not registered in Sonny¡¯s head that his parents were divorced. Liberty had a heart of gold. She never spoke ill about Hank in Sonny¡¯s presence despite her grievance with her in-ws. No matter what, Sonny and Hank were father and son. It would not do Sonny any good to hate his father. On the contrary, it would impede Sonny¡¯s mental growth. Half an hourter, Serenity, Liberty, and Sonny took a ride in Elisa¡¯s car as they set out for the zoo. Serenity¡¯s two bodyguards took another car and tagged behind. The Browns were split into two cars, and they drove behind the bodyguards. Jessica nagged the whole way, telling Hank off, ¡°We¡¯re trying to spend some time with Sonny, but your mom called your sister¡¯s family to join us, and now Sonny invited a few more people. ¡°Tell me. How are we supposed to bond with Sonny?¡± With the Hunt sisters around, Sonny would only hang around his mom and aunt. As a stepmother, Jessica had to step back and away from them. Sitting in the back seat, Mrs. Brown picked up on Jessica¡¯s nagging and said, ¡°What¡¯s wrong with asking them to go on the family outing? We¡¯re not spending your money. You can stay away from them if you don¡¯t like them. You don¡¯t have to make a fuss throughout the journey.¡± Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Jessica turned around and snapped back, ¡°Remember what you said. Don¡¯t let them spend Hank¡¯s money. They have more money than Hank now.¡± ¡°Even if we do spend money, it¡¯s Hank¡¯s and not yours. You¡¯re spending my son¡¯s money now, you know.¡± The thing Mrs. Brown could not get over was her son handing the purse strings to Jessica. ¡°Hank and I are married. His money is my money.¡± ¡°Your money should be Hank¡¯s too then. Why didn¡¯t you contribute to the home renovation? You were on a high ie when you were working. I bet your money went to your mom.¡± ¡°It¡¯s none of your business. I¡¯m free to give the money to anyone and spend however I want.¡± ¡°Spendthrift!¡± With the mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw bickering, Hank cried in distress, ¡°Cut it out, Jessica. That¡¯s my mom. You don¡¯t always have to win. Stop fighting. We¡¯re going on a trip. We¡¯re supposed to have some fun.¡± Hurt, Jessica said, ¡°Babe, you¡¯re taking your mom¡¯s side, but it¡¯s your mom¡¯s fault. Can¡¯t we just go on our family trip? Why must your sister¡¯s family be involved too? Your sister always takes advantage of you. I bet we¡¯ll foot the bill for her today.¡± ¡°How much can the tickets cost? Just leave it.¡± Hank was annoyed. Jessica pouted and shut up. She looked out the window sulkily and refused to engage further with her inws. By the time everybody arrived at the zoo and parked the cars, Jessica still had a sour face. She tucked her purse under her arm when it came to getting the entrance tickets. Hank had to pay for his sister¡¯s family. They could forget getting money out of her. Unlike the Browns, Serenity¡¯s group did not experience any problems. They bought the tickets and took Sonny in. Sonny was over the moon. The moment he stepped into the zoo, he was running wild with the other children. He did not need his mother to hold his hand. The boy was amazed by people riding by in horse carriages. ¡°Don¡¯t take off so fast, Sonny. Don¡¯t wander off on your own. Don¡¯t leave your mom and aunts behind.¡± Catching up to her nephew, Serenity pulled Sonny back and urged, ¡°There are a lot of people here. You¡¯re a small boy. You never know when you¡¯ll get lost in the crowd. Won¡¯t you be scared if you can¡¯t see your mom and aunts?¡± Sonny was too excited to process whatever his aunt was saying. With his eyes zoning in on a children¡¯s yground nearby, he eximed, ¡°Aunt Ser, I want to go there.¡± He then broke free from Serenity¡¯s grasp and bolted right ahead. Chapter 1170 Chapter 1170 Chapter 1170 Serenity had to chase after the little guy. It was crowded in the zoo, and children like Sonny were everywhere. This text is ? N?velDrama/.Org. Not in the mood to appreciate the scenery, Serenity was exhausted just running after Sonny. Sonny had been watching the shop with his mother day in and day out, and his mother would take him home for a rest after work. Liberty did not have time to take him out to y. Now that he was at the zoo, Sonny unleashed the unruly nature of children. It was a good thing Serenity had the habit of working out. At least, she could keep up with the child¡¯s activeness. Since Liberty had been jogging to lose weight, her stamina was at an optimum level. Only, Ms. Stone rarely engaged in such an activity. The long walk hurt her feet. As for the Browns, God knew where they were. Sonny had a great time at the yground, going several rounds at the age¨Cappropriate facilities until he was sweating all over. His aunt then picked him up to see the animals. The zoo was a huge ce. It was lunchtime by the time they were done looking around the birds¡® area. The group picked a restaurant to dine in. ¡°Where¡¯s Dad?¡± It was only now Sonny recalled his father. Liberty answered with a smile, ¡°You ran so fast and left your dad way behind.¡± Sonny looked around and could not see his father. He said, ¡°Give Dad a call, Mom.¡± Liberty acted like she dialed Hank¡¯s number. She then uttered, ¡°Your dad and grandparents are dining somewhere else. We¡¯ll see themter.¡± Sonny believed his mother. The Brown family had arrived where Serenity¡¯s group was. They were able to make up for the lost time by stopping Lucas from ying at the yground. Jessica had a fight with Hank and sulkily ditched the Browns to go off on her own. For once, Hank did not console her. Sure enough, Jessica¡¯s thoughts were confirmed. Hank no longer cherished her now that he got her. Hank gave her everything when they were sneaking around. Now that Jessica went from mistress to wife, she started slipping into Liberty¡¯s former shoes. Jessica was turning into the former Liberty while Liberty was living her life to the fullest. Liberty no longer had to tend to her inws or be her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw¡¯s punching bag. She was free to spend her own hard¨Cearned cash, and no one could have a say about it. The world was her oyster. For the first time, Jessica regretted her choices. She regretteding between Hank and Liberty¡¯s marriage. Jessica thought she would not walk the same path as Liberty when she married Hank. Yet reality gave her a p in the face. The pair had not even had their wedding, and Hank was already not as loving as before. She thought it was because he did not get along with her family. Someone bumped into her, nearly tipping her off bnce. ¡°Watch where you¡¯re going!¡± Jessica yelled at the man Seeing that the person was covered in a ck mask and sunsses, Jessica got a sinking. feeling in her stomach Chapter 1171 Chapter 1171 Chapter 1171 The man murmured a quick apology before slipping a note into Jessica¡¯s hand. Jessica clutched onto the note, not having the nerve to open it in public. She looked around and saw the sign for the nearest toilet. Following the signpost, she went into the ladies¡® room and opened the note for a look. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. The note wrote, ¡°We will cause a distraction during an aquarium show and take the child amid the chaos. Your task is to lure them to the aquarium.¡± Jessica shredded the note and flushed the pieces down the toilet. She thought those people would not carry on with the mission since arge group of the family came along. Plus, Serenity brought two bodyguards to the trip. It never urred to Jessica that they had no intentions of giving up. They nned to strike during a show at the aquarium. Would they seed? Jessica was not with the Brown family now, much less Serenity and her sister. Coming out of thedies¡® room, Jessica gave Hank a call. She told Hank to send his location to her. Holding herself back from throwing a fit, she met up with the Browns. Jessica then asked Hank where Liberty was and found out that Liberty¡¯s group fell behind. After lunch, Jessica insisted on waiting at a nearby restaurant for Liberty and the others before watching the performance at the aquarium. Many who came to the zoo were here for the aquatic performance. Serenity¡¯s group took Sonny into the aquarium. ¡°Sonny.¡± Lucas had a fun time today. ¡°Lucas.¡± Sonny politely greeted Lucas as Lucas approached to sit with Sonny. The boy was yakking to Sonny about the animals he saw. The adults let the children sit together. Due to Lucas¡¯s history of picking on Sonny, Serenity sat beside Sonny while Liberty kept an eye on the children from behind. The two Yorks¡® bodyguards were sitting not too far away. Instead of watching the show, they were bright¨Ceyed and bushy¨Ctailed. Jessica was not in the mood to watch the show as she was on edge. She kept turning her gaze to Sonny. She wondered if the n would work. Would Sonny be hurt in their hands? Although there were a lot of people in the zoo, would these people be able to escape once they got the boy? When would she stir amotion? The York family¡¯s bodyguards were high on alert. In short, Jessica was on pins and needles. Halfway through the performance when everybody was highly invested, a fight erupted at the back of the crowd. The hugemotion caused everybody to turn around and look. Two parties had somehow gotten into a row. One party was a group of young men, and young men tended to be hot¨Cblooded. Unable to get a one¨Cup over a few olderdies, the group tried to resolve the fight with their fists. The first swing started a chain of reactions. These olderdies were not one to be messed with. They rolled up their sleeves and gave these youngsters a run for their money. Since both parties wererge in numbers, the fight turned out of control. Innocent bystanders were furious to be hit, so they joined the fight. Everybody watched the fight rather than the show. Many steered clear to not get involved. With many trying to get out of the way, there was bound to be pushing and shoving and this further fueled the fight. The aquarium was in total chaos. Jessica became more nervous. It dawned on her that this was the disturbance those people were talking about. She turned to Sonny. The York family¡¯s bodyguards escorted Serenity, Liberty, and Elisa out of the aquarium during the unrest. Chapter 1172 Chapter 1172 Chapter 1172 Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Liberty clung tightly to her son. Jessica knew the n would fail when Liberty held Sonny, and the York family¡¯s bodyguards escorted the group out of the aquarium. ¡°Lucas! Lucas!¡± Chelsea¡¯s shrieks snapped Jessica out of her thoughts. A big man grabbed Lucas and made a run for it. Jessica was dumbfounded. Did they grab the wrong child? ¡°Honey! Hank! Go after them! That person took Lucas!¡± With no time to watch the fight, Chelsea tried to pursue the man who took Lucas while. calling her husband and brother for help. Realizing that Lucas was kidnapped, the Browns tried to go in pursuit, but they could not get past the crowd. ¡°A kidnapper! My child was kidnapped! It¡¯s that tall man there. That¡¯s him! He took my child!¡± Chelsea went pale in panic. Unable to elbow her way through the crowd, she cried out loud. Hearing a kidnapping was taking ce, all the parents, who were here for the show with their kids, stuck with their children and ran out of the aquarium. It only made the situation more chaotic than it already was. Some kind¨Chearted people tried to save Chelsea¡¯s son. The man who had Lucas ran too quickly, and somebody seemed to have paved a way for him to make a quick getaway. ¡°Serenity! Serenity! He took Lucas! Please save my Lucas!¡± Chelsea squeezed her way into the crowd and screamed at Serenity and Liberty when she found them. No matter their differences, Serenity was not going to sit by in a moment of crisis and let a kidnapper take Lucas. Nevertheless, she did not go ahead and rescue Lucas. Instead, she told the two bodyguards to chase after the man and bring Lucas back. While the two bodyguards were in pursuit of the kidnapper, Liberty felt a sudden force ripping her son out of her hands. Acting quickly, Liberty clutched onto her son and refused to let go. Serenity turned back to find someone trying to snatch Sonny from her sister. Without a second thought, she lifted her leg and kicked the man in ck to stop him from taking Sonny. Elisa joined in to help Liberty protect Sonny. ¡°Liberty, we should leave now.¡± Sensing something amiss about the disturbance, Serenity and Elisa shielded Liberty and Sonny as they escaped the scene. Someone had called the cops because of themotion at the aquarium. The security guards of the zoo were the first to arrive. Not too longter, the nearest police station dispatched its officers. A few police cars arrived at the scene. That was the least of Serenity¡¯s problems. The only thing on her mind was to get her sister and nephew out of the zoo. It was a precarious situation to be in. The Browns screamed and shouted, saying that their child was kidnapped. The two other bodyguards who were protecting Serenity in the shadows showed themselves when Serenity, Liberty, and Elisa evacuated from the ce. They escorted the adults and child out of there. Seeing that Mrs. York had two bodyguards in the open and two bodyguards in the dark, the mastermind behind themotion knew that while the diversion was a sess, it was unlikely they could kidnap Sonny now. Plus, Serenity herself was highly skilled in self¨Cdefense. The York family¡¯s bodyguards were around and now the cops were here. The priority was getting out of the zoo as they could no longer carry on with the n. Under the protection of the bodyguards, Serenity¡¯s group made it safely out of the zoo and into Elisa¡¯s car. Liberty held onto her son the whole time. She was afraid to think of the consequences. Chapter 1173 Chapter 1173 Chapter 1173 Liberty would have lost her son to the kidnapper if she had loosened her grip even by a tiny bit. Now that they were inside Elisa¡¯s car, Liberty continued to clutch onto her son. Color drained from her face. The lingering fear had not left Serenity. Elisa called her brother and the moment her brother picked up, she said, ¡°Clive, send all our bodyguards to fetch us from Wiltspoon Zoo. There¡¯s a kidnapper on the loose. Sonny was nearly taken. ¡°I don¡¯t think I can drive now. What if someone stops the car and kidnaps Sonny?¡± This was Elisa¡¯s first encounter with such a chaotic and dangerous situation. Sure, she was cocky and acted as if nothing scared her, but her legs went weak when Sonny was almost taken. It would be hard to catch up to the kidnapper amid the chaos if Sonny was really taken¡­ The thought of it drained the color from herplexion. Her limbs were still shaking as she could not settle down. She was not in a position to drive right now. Thest thing she wanted was to get into a car ident. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°What? Is Sonny okay? I¡¯ll send security right away.¡± Clive was shocked to hear Sonny was nearly kidnapped. Ignoring the fact that he had an important meeting to attend in a bit, Clive walked out of his office and called his security team to set out to the zoo. The two bodyguards in the shadows had already contacted Zachary. The first thing Serenity did was call Zachary once she got a grip on herself. While Clive was rushing over with his team of security, Zachary drove with his security detail to the zoo. ¡°Sonny.¡± Serenity stroked Sonny¡¯s back and calmed her sister down. ¡°It¡¯s okay now, Liberty. It¡¯s okay now.¡± She nearly put her nephew in danger due to her carelessness. ¡°Sonny would have been taken if I wasn¡¯t strong. He was a big guy too.¡± Liberty mumbled under her breath. She was relieved that she had been working out to shed the pounds. Liberty did all the manual work at the diner, so she was strong enough to hold onto Sonny tightly. ¡°Seren, thank goodness you can fight.¡± Liberty was d that her sister took up kickboxing. Her sister kicked the man the moment she sensed something amiss. The man ran away when he realized he could not take Sonny. Serenity gave Sonny a huge cuddle. Not knowing what was going on, the little man quietly let his mother hold him. Now that he was in his aunt¡¯s arms, Sonny asked, ¡°What happened to Lucas, Aunt Ser?¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine, Sonny. Don¡¯t be scared.¡± Caressing her nephew¡¯s head, Serenity tenderly uttered, ¡°He¡¯ll be okay.¡± Now, Serenity was grateful to Zachary for assigning bodyguards to protect her in the open and in the dark. God knew what would happen today if it were not for them. She said, ¡°It¡¯s best not to stick around when something like that happens. Things can happen when the situation gets out of hand.¡± The message should be for parents with children. It was a good lesson to learn. The Browns were too busy watching themotion instead of watching over Lucas. It made Lucas an easy target. Although the kidnapper was quickly spotted, a lot of things were happening in the aquarium at the same time. The kidnapper must belong to an organization, and the Browns did not have the means to save Lucas. Moving past their differences, Serenity assigned two bodyguards to rescue Lucas. She wondered what happened thereafter. ¡°We¡¯re safe now, Seren. You should ask them to check if Lucas is found. Chelsea is a terrible person, but she¡¯s a mother. I can understand since I¡¯m a mom too. Sonny was almost taken. I can only imagine Chelsea¡¯s panic and pain.¡± Liberty hoped her sister could send the bodyguards out to search for Lucas. They were all on the trip together. There was no way Liberty could go off without checking on the others. In the end, Serenity left a bodyguard with Liberty and Sonny in the car while she and Elisa reentered the zoo with another bodyguard to help find Lucas. Chapter 1174 Chapter 1174 Chapter 1174 Serenity ran into the two bodyguards at the zoo entrance as they were carrying Lucas out. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± The two bodyguards brought the kid, who was screaming for his mom, to Serenity. Putting Lucas on the ground, the bodyguard uttered in distress, ¡°Can you give his family a call to pick him up? He¡¯s been crying the whole time.¡± ¡°Serenity.¡± Lucas wailed out of fear. He had never met the York family¡¯s bodyguards. The boy was taken by a stranger and rescued by another pair of strangers. While Lucas was a wild child, he was only four years old. It was normal to be frightened to tears. Serenity was someone he knew. Lucas immediately clung to Serenity¡¯s leg, asking to be picked up when he saw Serenity. ¡°It¡¯s okay now.¡± Although Serenity was not fond of Lucas, she needed to soothe the poor child. Original from N?velDrama.Org. Serenity dialed Hank¡¯s number and said, ¡°We got Lucas. We¡¯re at the entrance of the zoo. Come out here.¡± The Browns were crying on their knees after Lucas was kidnapped. Mrs. Brown had passed out once. Someone had pinched her nose to wake her, and Mrs. Brown continued to scream the walls down with her daughter. Hank and George scrambled to look around, having no idea where the kidnapper went. Following a phone call from Serenity, Hank was overjoyed and thanked Serenity profusely. He immediately informed his sister and brother¨Cinw. By the time Zachary and Clive arrived at the zoo with their security teams, the Brown family had found their way out. ¡°Lucas.¡± With her son lost and found, Chelsea charged ahead, put her arms around her son, and burst into tears. George was relieved to see his son safe and sound. Mrs. Brown and her daughter hugged Lucas and cried nonstop. It took a while before Chelsea turned around and fell on her knees before Serenity. She thanked Serenity and expressed her gratitude. ¡°Thank you, Serenity. Thank you for saving Lucas. Thank you.¡± Lucas would be long gone if Serenity was without bodyguards and did not put the past behind them. Many families spent a lifetime searching for their kidnapped children but to no avail. Serenity was her family¡¯s savior for sending her bodyguards after Lucas. Chelsea was not the nicest person. She often drove a wedge between Hank and Liberty when she was Liberty¡¯s sister¨Cinw. Nevertheless, as Liberty said, Chelsea was a mother. To mothers, their children were more important than their lives. Mothers were willing to do just about anything for their children. ¡°Get up. Please get up.¡± Serenity helped Chelsea up. ¡°I¡¯ll help anyone in the same situation. Just don¡¯t forget to watch the kid. A lot of times, tragedy happens when parents take their eyes off the children even for a second.¡± Wiping her tears, Chelsea relived the fear and replied, ¡°I won¡¯t be such a busybody anymore.¡± ¡°Serenity, thank you. If it wasn¡¯t for you¡­¡± The Brown family took turns to thank Serenity. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary came running with his security detail. Clive arrived on the scene with his bodyguards too. ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny?¡± Looking solemn, Zachary asked with concern, ¡°Is Sonny alright?¡± Chapter 1175 Chapter 1175 Chapter 1175 Serenity answered, ¡°My sister got a good hold on Sonny, and I gave the man a kick. The kidnapper gave up on Sonny and ran away.¡± She turned over and looked in the direction of Elisa¡¯s car before adding, ¡°Sonny is in Elisa¡¯s car.¡± Through the conversation between Serenity and Zachary, the Browns realized that Sonny was nearly taken too. Mrs. Brown cried and shouted to see her grandson. It was then Liberty took Sonny by the hands and got out of the car. ¡°Sonny! Sonny!¡± Mrs. Brown held onto Sonny, making sure her grandson was fine before choking with sobs. ¡°Thank goodness you¡¯re okay. Thank goodness.¡± ¡°Grandmom.¡± Seeing that the olddy had tears on her face, the little man reached out to wipe away her tears. Mrs. Brown had never looked after Sonny, but Sonny was her only grandson, so of course, she adored him. With Sonny¡¯s caring gesture touching Mrs. Brown¡¯s heart, she cuddled Sonny and had another bout of crying. The Browns gathered around Sonny. ¡°Stop crying, Mom. All is good now.¡± Hank consoled his mother. Rising to her feet, Mrs. Brown wiped her tears and turned around to give her son a push. She pointed her finger at her son. ¡°It¡¯s your fault. This wouldn¡¯t have happened if you two didn¡¯t take the kids to the zoo. ¡°It was a good thing Sonny asked Serenity toe along. Otherwise¡­ I would suspect that you brought the children to the zoo to be kidnapped if you weren¡¯t Sonny¡¯s father and Lucas¡¯s uncle.¡± Mrs. Brown¡¯s usation washed the color off Jessica¡¯s face. When Mrs. Brown¡¯s angry eyes were fixated on her, Jessica struggled to refute, ¡°I was only trying to bond with Sonny. No one would want this to happen.¡± Mrs. Brown gave Jessica the stink eye, believing that the woman was bad luck. Since her son married Jessica, nothing had gone well for the family. A simple trip to the zoo with Sonny ended up in a kidnap attempt. These people were brazened to abduct children in public. Embarrassed, Jessica hung her head low. She looked hurt. Feeling bad for his wife, Hank stood up for her, ¡°It¡¯s an ident, Mom. No one wishes for it to happen. I told Sonny early on that I would take him to the zoo. Why are you putting the me on Jessica?¡± ¡°You alwayse to her defense. Well, you¡¯ll regret it one day.¡± Mrs. Brown red at her son. ¡°Let¡¯s go home, Liberty.¡± Not one to stay for the Brown family¡¯s circus show, Serenity told her sister and went to pick Sonny up. Zachary took Sonny from Serenity¡¯s arms. ¡°Uncle Zack.¡± Sitting in his uncle¡¯s embrace, the little man happily shared his experience at the zoo without knowing that he had escaped a disaster moments ago. Zachary kissed the boy on the cheek and dotingly uttered, ¡°I¡¯ll go with you when you want to see the animals again.¡± With him around, no one would dare harm Sonny. Today may look like an ident to the public, but Zachary and Clive suspected something Original from N?velDrama.Org. more sinister. Chapter 1176 Chapter 1176 Chapter 1176 Even Serenity suspected foul y. They simply did not raise their suspicion in front of everybody. ¡°Okay.¡± The fun ended too soon for Sonny. He found the show at the aquarium entertaining, but it was a shame that his mother brought him out before it was over. The York family¡¯s security team stood in two rows, clearing a way to the Rolls Royce. Carrying Sonny in his arms, Zachary walked alongside Serenity to the car. Liberty hitched a ride in one of the cars driven by his bodyguard. Elisa took her brother¡¯s car while a bodyguard drove her car back. Soon, the two CEOs left Wiltspoon Zoo, escorted by their security teams. Once they were gone, Jessica could breathe a sigh of relief. She was afraid everybody might suspect her. On their way back, Serenity said to her husband, ¡°Zachary, something about today doesn¡¯t sit well with me. I feel like it¡¯s more than just a kidnapping. They created a distraction and kidnapped the children amid the chaos. ¡°No one was holding Lucas at the time, so the kidnappers saw their chance to take Lucas. However, my sister was holding Sonny, but they tried to snatch him out of my sister¡¯s hands. I think their target has always been Sonny. ¡°Lucas¡¯s kidnapping might be the diversion because I had bodyguards with me. They couldn¡¯t get with the bodyguards around, so they abducted Lucas. Although I¡¯m not fond of Lucas, that doesn¡¯t mean I¡¯ll just watch him get taken away. ¡°I sent the bodyguards to rescue Lucas, leaving us without one. We¡¯re adults, but we¡¯re also three defenseless women. The kidnappers would face less resistance if they tried to kidnap Sonny then. ¡°It¡¯ll increase their sess rate at kidnapping Sonny. Some parents didn¡¯t manage to cling to their children amid the chaos, and the kids were wandering about. These people did not after these other children.¡± Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. go Serenity did not want to read too much into the situation. Yet, she could not help herself. She got the feeling that today¡¯s incident was more than met the eye. Looking sullen, Zachary gave it a thought before responding, ¡°I see your point. I¡¯ll get Josh on it. The possibility that Sonny is the prime target is slim.¡± He stared at Serenity. Serenity got the message. ¡°They¡¯re either after you or me?¡± Zachary answered in a husky voice, ¡°It¡¯s more likely that they¡¯re after you. Sonny is your nephew. You have a great rtionship because you raised him. It would kill you if anything were to happen to Sonny. ¡°Would you go after Sonny if he was taken? Of course, you would. They might use Sonny to lure you into a trap.¡± Zachary¡¯s facial lines tensed up. Serenity had a heart of gold and rarely upset anybody. The people she had a conflict with were her rtives, but the Hunts were not capable of such an borate scheme. The only other people left were Mrs. Newman and her daughter. Ms. Carrie was still in police custody. Zachary kept Mr. Newman and his wife on surveince, and the couple was busy bailing their precious daughter out. Despite their resentment toward Serenity, the couple would not be able to pull off the scheme in such a short amount of time, unless the n had been in the works for a while. Nevertheless, it had not been long since Serenity and the Newmandies crossed paths. If Serenity was not the prime target, these people must be using Serenity to get to Zachary. Zachary was leaning toward histter theory. He was the mover and shaker in Wiltspoon. Apart from Clive, many others would try not to get on Zachary¡¯s bad side even though they could not rub shoulders with him. Nevertheless, there were still people who found Zachary an eyesore and hated his guts. It was hard to go after Zachary since he was always surrounded by his bodyguards and had the skills to defend himself. His vehicle was bulletproof too. The next best person to strike was the love of his life¨CSerenity. Chapter 1177 Chapter 1177 Chapter 1177 The whole of Wiltspoon knew Zachary was crazy for his wife. It would be the death of Zachary if anything were to happen to Serenity. ¡°Do you think Mrs. Newman is in on it?¡± Serenity¡¯s first thought was Mrs. Newman. After a brief silence, Zachary said, ¡°I can¡¯t tell for sure, but I told Josh to keep an eye on Mr. Newman and his wife after your argument with Ms. Carrie. There¡¯s no unusual activity on their end. ¡°Seren, we can only know through an investigation if the mastermind is after you or me.¡± Zachary put Sonny next to him and pulled Serenity into his arms. Locking Serenity in his embrace, he vowed solemnly, ¡°Don¡¯t be scared. I¡¯m here for you. I won¡¯t let anyone harm you.¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity looked into his eyes with worry. ¡°If they¡¯re out to get you¡­ You must be careful, Zachary.¡± ¡°Unfortunately, I hold a status that tends to attract danger. I¡¯m used to it. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll be fine.¡± The York family sheltered their descendants from the outside world until they were ready to enter the business world. The world had no idea what their names were. The purpose of doing so was to protect the York boys against malice. The York boys took up the art of self¨Cdefense since they were young to train their bodies and defend themselves. Although they would not be caught dead without their bodyguards, there was still that 1% chance they might find themselves alone and needing to fend for themselves. Serenity rested her head against his chest. ¡°I hope it¡¯s only an ident and nothing more to it.¡± If it was simply an ident, they could call themselves unlucky to be eyed by kidnappers. Should there be a mastermind involved, incidents would only keeping. ¡°It was quite amotion today. Even if it was a scheme, the mastermind wouldn¡¯t try anything so soon.¡± Sonny, who was left alone and ignored by his aunt and uncle, nudged Serenity away from Zachary. As Serenity straightened her back and watched in confusion, the boy climbed onto Zachary¡¯sp and sat down. Leaning back, Sonny rested against Zachary¡¯s chest. He looked rather rxed. ¨C Serenity was speechless. Her nephew was fighting her over her man! ¡°Sonny.¡± Rxing his facial muscles, Zachary lowered his head and kissed Sonny on the cheek. He tenderly asked Sonny, ¡°Do you want to learn to fight, Sonny?¡± ¡°What do you mean, Uncle Zack?¡± ¡°Have you seen your aunt fight off the bad guys? Don¡¯t you think your aunt is awesome? She learned to fight those bad guys.¡± Sonny had never seen Serenity exchanging blows with anybody, but he did see Serenity give the stranger who tried to hold him a kick. At the time, Sonny thought his aunt was the coolest person ever. He bobbed his head. ¡°I want to be a fighter like Aunt Ser, Uncle Zack. I want to learn to fight.¡± Zachary said affectionately, ¡°How about I hire a teacher to teach you to fight? But it¡¯s not going to be easy. You can¡¯t cry when it gets too hard.¡± ¡°He can take lessons from schools.¡± Serenity added, ¡°There are gyms everywhere.¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Sonny earnestly uttered, ¡°I won¡¯t cry, Uncle Zack. I want to be as good as Aunt Ser.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll find you a teacher for one¨Con¨Cone sessions. The lessons won¡¯te in the way of your school in September.¡± He then told Serenity, ¡°The gyms work well to the extent of a good workout. It will take a long time before he gets to your level. You have the skills to take down thugs, but you have nothing on the real professionals. ¡°The boys in my family got lessons from experts. Sonny would benefit more from one¨Con- one sessions than a gym setting. It will be hard though. I don¡¯t know if Sonny can stand the hardship.¡± Chapter 1178 Chapter 1178 Chapter 1178 ¡°It¡¯s a personal choice to take up self¨Cdefense if you¡¯re an ordinary person, but now¡­ Sonny should learn to fight and protect himself.¡± Zachary had always held a torch for Sonny. He believed Sonny had a lot of potential and thought about taking the boy under his wing when he was older. Now, Zachary was merely carrying the n out ahead of schedule. ¡°That¡¯s true. Alright, we¡¯ll go with your idea. Thank you, babe.¡± For Zachary to help Sonny tap into his potential and creativity, Serenity was happy for her nephew and thanked Zachary for it. Zachary carried Sonny with one hand and dabbed on Serenity¡¯s nose with his free hand before uttering, ¡°You always call me Zachary, but suddenly I¡¯m ¡°babe¡± when I talk about getting Sonny a coach. Does Sonny hold a bigger space in your heart than I do?¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°You both hold equal spaces. No, you take up a bigger space in my heart.¡± Sonny was only a kid, but Zachary was an adult. Of course, Zachary took up more space. Not able to read between the lines, Zachary lovingly dabbed her nose again. ¡°I won¡¯t be jealous of Sonny.¡± ¡°Great. Imagine the jealousy when we have a baby if you can be jealous of a three¨Cyear¨Cold.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll only love our baby. I won¡¯t fight with a baby over your love and attention.¡± Zachary believed he would give the baby all the love in the world. Why would hepete with a baby? Of course, he was prone to eat his words. Serenity chuckled. Yeah, right. Zachary was a possessive man. Serenity doubted he would notpete with a baby for her affection. Back at the city center, Zachary brought Serenity and Liberty to Brynfield. Grandma May had received the news by now. She had been waiting at Brynfield. Hearing that someone was at the door, Grandma May approached the entrance. The door opened to Serenity holding Sonny¡¯s hand. Grandma May scooped the boy into her arms. ¡°Oh, thank God. Thank God.¡± Grandma May repeatedly expressed relief. Clive and Elisa also went to Brynfrield. Clive and Zachary may not be on the best terms in business, but they could agree on one thing¨Cthey needed to work together to get to the bottom of this. If it was a case of unintentional mishap, they could protect their families by adding security. However, if it was something sinister, they needed to fish out the mastermind and stop this from happening again. The incident at the zoo quickly became breaking news in Wiltspoon. Zachary and Clive, together with their security teams, were caught on camera picking someone up at the zoo. While others may not know whose children fell victim to the kidnapping, Duncan saw the news and immediately thought of Sonny. This was because Zachary and his wife did not have children yet, and Clive¡¯s baby was still in his wife¡¯s belly. Duncan¡¯s mind immediately flew to Sonny. Zachary and Clive would be the first ones at the scene if anything happened to Sonny. Both were Sonny¡¯s uncles. Duncan dialed Zachary¡¯s number instead of Liberty¡¯s. Once he received confirmation, Duncan could not sit still in his office. Although he knew Sonny was fine, Duncan needed to see Sonny with his own eyes before he could feel at ease. Ditching work, Duncan hurried out of his office. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. He ran into his mother and Lily at the lift. Chapter 1179 Chapter 1179 Chapter 1179 The pair must have returned from a shopping trip. Lily held Mrs. Lewis¡¯s arm while carrying a few shopping bags herself. ¡°Are you heading out, Duncan?¡± Running into her son, Mrs. Lewis asked. ¡°Mom. Ms. Harmon.¡± Duncan said hello before adding. ¡°I have an emergency, Mom. Sorry, I can¡¯t attend to your and Ms. Harmon. You can either wait in my office or go home for now?¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°What¡¯s the emergency?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked with concern. ¡°It¡¯s an emergency.¡± Duncan may be dense, but he was not going to tell his mother that he was ditching work to check up on Sonny. He was afraid Mom might get the wrong idea about him and Liberty. A lot of people took it the wrong way and believed Duncan had a thing for Liberty. Nobody believed Duncan when he said he took a shine to Sonny. People thought he was trying to earn Sonny¡¯s regard to be his stepdad. ¡°Is it work¨Crted?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked. Duncan lied, ¡°Yes, Mom. I got to go.¡± ¡°Alright. Go on then. Come home for dinner. Lily bought you some clothes. You can see if they fit when you¡¯re back for dinner. I¡¯ll send Lily to deliver food to you starting tomorrow if you skip out on dinner tonight.¡± Mrs. Lewis knew her son well. Duncan did not have the hots for Lily, and he did not like Lily pestering him every day. Mrs. Lewis needed to threaten him so he woulde home for dinner. ¡°Also, stop staying over at Zachary¡¯s ce. He¡¯s a newlywed and wants to spend time with his wife. Your presence is making you the third wheel. Don¡¯t you have a home? Don¡¯t you have a house? Why must you stay at Zachary¡¯s ce? ¡°Move back home tonight.¡± Duncan responded, ¡°Zachary and Serenity have been married for six months. They¡¯re past the newlywed¡¯s phase.¡± ¡°They¡¯re intimate, so every day is like a honeymoon to them. Do you have a problem with that?¡± Duncan was speechless. ¡°I¡¯ll talk to Zachary if you don¡¯t move back. Our home needs a facelift anyway. Since we don¡¯t have a ce to stay, we can stay at his house. I¡¯ll go wherever you go.¡± Duncan was speechless. His mom was always true to her word. Lily was silent as it was not her ce to butt in when Mrs. Lewis threatened Duncan toe home. Mrs. Lewis was doing so to give her a chance to bond with Duncan. ¡°Fine, Mom. I¡¯ll be home for dinner.¡± Duncan relented. ¡°I got to go, Mom.¡± ¡°Go on.¡± With her threat taking effect, Mrs. Lewis generously waved her arm and let her son attend to business. Duncan slipped into the lift. Standing outside the lift, Mrs. Lewis and Lily watched Duncan go in, and the door of the lift closed. Mrs. Lewis then took strides ahead. Lily followed behind her. Mrs. Lewis went to ask Duncan¡¯s secretary about the nature of Duncan¡¯s emergency. The secretary replied, ¡°Mr. Lewis rushed out after he got a call. I think something went wrong with the XX project. That¡¯s the most important project right now. Mr. Lewis personally keeps tabs on it.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Mrs. Lewis remarked. Lily asked, ¡°You¡¯re Duncan¡¯s secretary. Why didn¡¯t you go with him?¡± The secretary answered, ¡°My colleague, another secretary is waiting for Mr. Lewis there. The secretary follows up on the project with Mr. Lewis, so I won¡¯t be of much help even if I go.¡± Lily responded, ¡°Oh, Duncan has two secretaries?¡± Chapter 1180 Chapter 1180 Chapter 1180 ¡°I¡¯ve been busy with my wedding and will be taking off for my honeymoon. Mr. Lewis can¡¯t go without a secretary.¡± The secretary gave an air¨Ctight answer. Lily had nothing to say. Duncan had no idea his mother and Lily would interrogate the secretary in his absence. It was a good thing this secretary gave great answers that did not raise his mother¡¯s suspicion. Mrs. Lewis and Lily did not follow the news about the incident at the zoo because it was unrted to them. Knowing that Sonny was at Brynfield, Duncan made haste there. Zachary and Clive were no longer there by the time Duncan arrived at Brynfield. Only thedies were at home. Elisa was still there. Duncan gave Liberty a call. With Liberty taking his call, he asked, ¡°Are you and Sonny still at your sister¡¯s ce, Liberty?¡± ¡°Yeah, Seren said she¡¯ll drive us home after dinner. What¡¯s the matter, Mr. Lewis?¡± ¡°I heard about what happened today.¡± Duncan uttered, ¡°It was on the news. I asked Zachary, and he told me that Sonny is okay, but I¡¯m still worried. I want to check up on Sonny. I¡¯m at the entrance of Brynfield. Can youe out and let me in?¡± Liberty was dumbstruck as it never urred to her that the incident made the news. Still, it was newsworthy that a kidnapping happened amid the chaos. Duncan caught on that something might have happened to Sonny probably because Clive and Zachary appeared at the zoo together. These two CEOs attracted a lot of attention. ¡°Alright.¡± Liberty was not going to say no to Duncan when he came to visit Sonny out of concern. ¡°Hang on. I¡¯lle right now.¡± After hanging up, Liberty told her sister, ¡°Seren, give me your house key and ess card. I need to bring Mr. Lewis in. He¡¯s here to see Sonny.¡± Serenity gave the key and ess card to her sister. Liberty went out. Elisa waited until Liberty was out before saying, ¡°Seren, Mr. Lewis really cares about Sonny. He¡¯s dropping by to visit him.¡± Grandma May, who was picking the vegetables to make dinner with Serenity, chuckled to herself. Duncan seemed toe running every time anything happened to Sonny and his mother. Since Duncan believed he was only here for Sonny, Grandma May could not be bothered to break it to him. Duncan shoulde to his own realization. Liberty had only started her business. It would not be good if Mrs. Lewis were to lose it and go after Liberty when Duncan discovered his feelings. There would only be hope for the pair when Liberty was sessful in her career, and Duncan faced his feelings. Not all elders in the family were as open¨Cminded as the Yorks. Apart from Duncan, Jasmine got the news when she was watching the shop. She promptly closed for business and rushed over. Jasmine happened to arrive the moment Liberty went to bring Duncan in. Hence, they all entered Brynfield together. Ten minutester. ¡°Sonny.¡± Duncan walked into the apartment and toward Sonny who was fooling around with Elisa. He picked Sonny up. It startled Sonny. Pulling himself together, Sonny struggled to get down. ¡°Thank goodness you¡¯re okay, Sonny.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Duncan held Sonny tightly, refusing to let go. Just thinking about the potential kidnapping gave Duncan the jitters. ¡°Let go, Dunc.¡± Sonny insisted on getting his two feet on the ground. The fewdies were watching Duncan. All except Liberty could tell that Duncan was more nervous and scared than Hank as the father was. Hank did not evene over to soothe his son. Chapter 1181 Chapter 1181 Chapter 1181 ¡°Ahem¡­¡± Grandma May cleared her throat. When Duncan looked at her, she reminded him, ¡°Duncan, Sonny wasn¡¯t scared by the robbers but by you. Look at how he¡¯s struggling to get off you to the ground.¡± ¡°Dunc, let go of me,¡± Sonny asked again. The little guy¡¯s small face was tense. It was obvious that he was mad. Dunc was too strong, hence Sonny could not break free from his embrace. Duncan immediately put Sonny down and squatted as well. He grabbed Sonny¡¯s shoulders instead and said gently, ¡°Sonny, as long as you¡¯re okay, as long as you¡¯re okay.¡± Sonny looked at Duncan with his big twinkling eyes. Dunc treated him quite well. Sonny could sense Dunc¡¯s sincerity toward him. Dunc was not teasing him and really liked him. Sonny lifted his small hand and ced it on the scar on Duncan¡¯s face. He lightly touched it and then retracted his hand as if he was afraid. Seeing as Duncan was not in pain, Sonny reached out his little hand again to touch the scar. ¡°Dunc, does it hurt?¡± ¡°Not anymore.¡± It was extremely painful when Duncan was injured back then, and his handsome face was stained by blood. His mom was so frightened that her legs went weak, thinking that he would die from severe injury. Duncan¡¯s sick grandmother almost died learning about his injury. Although sheter knew that he was only marred by a scar, she was so terrified that her condition became worse. She died not long after. When that happened, Duncan finally regretted it and turned over a new leaf. He quit the so- called underworld and started afresh. He kept the scar as it was both a testimony to his prime in youth and a reminder that his rebellion led to his grandmother¡¯s premature death from illness. The doctor had said that his grandmother could have lived for three to five more years with good conditioning and care¡­ Before she passed away, she was still worried about her little grandson the most. Chapter 1181 212 She touched the scar on Duncan¡¯s face and wanted to say something but could not. In the end, her old hand slipped from his face. At that moment, Duncan lost the grandmother who loved him most. For many years, he did not go for cosmetic surgery regardless of his family¡¯s advice. ¡°But it¡¯s so scary.¡± Sonnymented softly, ¡°It looks like a bug that bites.¡± Duncan fell silent. He liked Sonny very much. He did not know why, but he just liked the little one. Perhaps this was fate, but Sonny always refused to be carried by him. Everyone said that Sonny was afraid of the scar on his face. At this moment, Duncan listened to Sonny¡¯s soft words. When Sonny gently touched his scar with his little hand, there was fear but also¡­ A look of distress in his eyes. The little one felt pain for Duncan. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Duncan pulled Sonny into his arms and let him go after a quick embrace. He then stood up and naturally said to the olddy, ¡°Grandma May, make more food. I¡¯m eating here.¡± ¡°You came a little earlier, or you¡¯ll only be eating instant noodles once the food is ready.¡± Grandma Mayughed and said, ¡°There aren¡¯t instant noodles here. Zack and Seren don¡¯t eat them, so there aren¡¯t any at home.¡± Duncan responded with a smile, ¡°I¡¯m not a picky eater. I¡¯ll eat whatever there is to eat.¡± He greeted Elisa when he saw her. Elisa nced back and forth between Duncan and Sonny and teased the former, ¡°If Sonny were a girl and of legal age, I¡¯d suspect you have intentions for him. You looked so dearly at him just now that your eyes almost became heart shapes.¡± Jasmine remarked, ¡°Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t treating Sonny as a girl; he¡¯s treating him as his baby. What he¡¯s disying is fatherly love.¡± Liberty was speechless. If she imed that Duncan¡¯s affection for Sonny was fatherly love, would that not make her and Duncan a couple given that she was Sonny¡¯s mother? Chapter 1182 Chapter 1182 Chapter 1182 Duncan sat on the sofa by himself and asked about what happened. ¡°It feels like their goal was to abduct Sonny.¡± Duncan¡¯s intuition was the same as Serenity¡¯s and Zachary¡¯s. ¡°Liberty, do you remember what they look like? If you can drawposites of them, I can have someone find them.¡± Duncan was no longer a part of the underworld, but his legend remained. If he needed help from those people, they would do anything they could to help him as they used to in the past. ¡°They were wearing ck masks and sunsses, so I couldn¡¯t see their appearances. I only know that they¡¯re tall and strong. They¡¯re not like ordinary thugs and are more like bodyguards.¡± Zachary always had a bunch of bodyguards with him, so Liberty was used to seeing them. They were all tall and powerful, so she felt that the thugs were closer to bodyguards. Duncan¡¯s eyes darkened. He did notment on what Liberty said and only asked for more details. Soon, it was time to eat. At this time, his mother called again. Duncan looked at the caller ID but did not answer. He calmly ate with everyone else. ¡°Duncan, who¡¯s calling you? You¡¯re not answering the call,¡± Grandma May inquired. Duncan calmly filled his te with food. He praised Serenity¡¯s cooking while he ate, and he said enviously, ¡°Zachary is blessed with delicious food.¡± ¡°You¡¯re jealous, aren¡¯t you? Find a wife who cooks well too, and you¡¯ll also be blessed with delicious food,¡± Grandma May teased him. ¡°Pick up the phone. The person has called several times. You might not want to answer it, but your ringtone is too loud and piercing. I¡¯m too old to listen to such noise.¡± ¡°Grandma May, I¡¯ll answer it after I¡¯m done eating.¡± Duncan remained calm and continued to eat. He asionally filled Sonny¡¯s te using the serving utensils and said, ¡°Sonny, you were frightened today. Eat more to get over the shock.¡± ¡°I wasn¡¯t frightened,¡± Sonny retorted seriously. ¡°Right, right, right, you weren¡¯t frightened. You¡¯re a little man, Sonny. You¡¯re brave and unafraid of anything.¡± Duncan¡¯s praise made Sonny raise his head and stick out his chest. His uncle also said that he was a little man. ¡°Liberty, I think you should send Sonny to learn some form of self¨Cdefense.¡± ¡°Zachary suggested that too. He said he¡¯d hire a trainer for Sonny so he could learn some punches and kicks.¡± The person who answered was Liberty. Duncan hummed. Zachary beat him to it. After all, Zachary was Sonny¡¯s uncle. After the meal, when Duncan¡¯s phone rang again, he answered it. ¡°Mom.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re not taking my call on purpose, right? I¡¯ve called a dozen times, and yet you¡¯re only answering now!¡± Mrs. Lewis was infuriated. Instead of calling his son¡¯s name, she simply called him by hisst name. ¡°Mom, I put my phone on silent during the meeting this afternoon and forgot to unmute it, so I didn¡¯t hear it ring. I took my phone out just now and saw that you called. I was confused why my phone didn¡¯t ring when there were iing calls.¡± Everyone present looked at Duncan. Who would have thought that he was an expert in telling lies? He did not blush nor stutter at all. It was as if what he said was the truth. Mrs. Lewis was not present, so she could only trust what her son said.Original from N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1183 Chapter 1183 Chapter 1183 ¡°You said you¡¯d be back for dinner tonight. Look at the time now. Are you still noting home?¡± Mrs. Lewis urged her son, ¡°Hurry up ande home. Lily cooked you some of her best dishes. I tasted them, and they¡¯re delicious. They¡¯re on par with dishes by a five¨Cstar hotel chef.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m not going back for dinner. I¡¯m not done with things yet. You and Ms. Harmon can dine together. Mom, Mr. Harmon is a guest in our house, so don¡¯t make her cook. That¡¯s poor hospitality.¡± Mrs. Lewis frowned. ¡°You¡¯re not done with things yet? Even if that¡¯s the case, you still have to eat. It¡¯s dark now, soe home to eat first. You can continue to work after dinner.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯ve eaten. I ate outside.¡± Mrs. Lewis responded, ¡°Lily made a lot of food¡­¡± ¡°You¡¯re blessed with delicious food.¡± Mrs. Lewis choked. She was almost pissed off by her son. Mrs. Lewis tried so hard to create opportunities for her son, but he either avoided them or found excuses to turn them down. Lily was outstanding, and she and Duncan had known each other for a long time. As long as the two of them got along, there would definitely be sparks between them. ¡°Duncan, I like Lily very much.¡± ¡°Then let her stay for a few more days to keep youpany.¡± ¡°Lily is also busy with work. She has to go home after a while.¡± Duncan smiled and replied to her, ¡°That¡¯s easy. You can follow her there and meet with her mom. Think of it as a trip for you to take a break and meet your old friend. What do you think? I¡¯ll arrange a private jet for you and send you there? ¡°Ask Dad to join you too. You¡¯re both retired and have no pressure from work, so you can travel as long as you want. It¡¯s fine if you onlye home next year.¡± Mrs. Lewis was so mad that she hung up the phone. ¡®That b*stard isn¡¯t interested in Lily at all!¡¯ Mrs. Lewis threw her phone on the coffee table and cursed, ¡°That brat is too arrogant. He doesn¡¯t fancy Lily at ail when she¡¯s so outstanding. Is he nning to stay unmarried for the rest of his life?¡± Mr. Lewis said to her, ¡°I told you to stop worrying about him and let nature take its course. He¡¯s not a toddler anymore. He has his own thoughts.¡± ¡°I wouldn¡¯t worry if he¡¯s only three years old. Do you think your youngest son is still young? He¡¯s thirty¨C six years old, and he¡¯ll turn thirty¨Cseven in a few months. How far is that from forty? ¡°Other people have almost be grandfathers at the age of forty, but your son is still unmarried even though he¡¯s approaching his forties. How can I not worry about him? He¡¯s the oldest bachelor left in our circle.¡± Mr. Lewis instinctively said, ¡°Julian is also an old bachelor.¡± Mrs. Lewis red at her husband. ¡°Julian is a few years younger than your son, okay? Your son is thirty¨Cseven years old, whereas Julian is only thirty¨Cfour or thirty¨Cfive years old.¡± She figured that Julian was around that age. Mrs. Lewis did not care how old other people¡¯s sons were. She only remembered that Julian and her youngest son were about the same age. ¡°Duncan is only thirty¨Csix.¡± ¡°His birthday ising soon. He¡¯ll be thirty¨Cseven when the timees.¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Mr. Lewis said, ¡°His birthday isn¡¯t evening soon¡­¡± Rtionship matters could not be forced. Mr. and Mrs. Lewis¡® youngest son was unsophisticated and straightforward. He could not understand women well and was very slow when it came to rtionships. Even a person as slow as Zachary could be enlightened, but Duncan had always been slow. Mr. Lewis felt that Duncan would only have a chance to be off the market if he found a girlfriend who could make him change. ¡°Derek, why don¡¯t we throw a party and invite all the youngdies of legal age in Wiltspoon? Duncan can choose from them and see if he can find the right one.¡± ¡°There are only a fewdies in Wiltspoon you¡¯re fond of, and Duncan knows them all. He would¡¯ve liked them long ago if he did. Why should we throw a party for a blind date?¡± Mrs. Lewis pouted. She had high requirements for her daughter¨Cinw. Chapter 1184 Chapter 1184 Chapter 1184 In any case, Duncan¡¯s future wife had to be well¨Cmatched with him in terms of their families social status. Mrs. Lewis remarked, ¡°Lily is still the most suitable one, but that brat isn¡¯t giving her a chance at all. If he spends some time with her, they might end up being together. I¡¯m going to York Corporation tomorrow.¡± Mr. Lewis asked her, ¡°Why are you going there?¡± ¡°Duncan, Zachary, and Josh are a trio. They¡¯re the closest friends. Zachary and Josh are both taken and have tasted the sweetness of love. I¡¯ll ask them to do the thinking for Duncan and get them to persuade him to give it a shot with Lily. ¡°He might not listen to his parents, but he¡¯ll listen to his good friends. He¡¯s even staying at Zachary¡¯s ce now. Dear, send me Zachary¡¯s phone number. I¡¯ll call himter and not wait until tomorrow.¡± Mrs. Lewis thought about asking Zachary and Josh for help. ¡°Zachary¡¯s bad at talking and is worse than your son. Call Josh instead. Josh knows how to talk, so he¡¯ll be more likely to persuade Duncan.¡± ¡°Right, right, right, then I¡¯ll call Josh.¡± If Josh heard this, he would wonder if he was almighty! Everyone always looked for him. Late at night, Zachary arrived home. He gently pushed the door to enter his house, then he carefully closed it again and locked it. The lights were lit. He turned around and saw Serenity standing at the door of their room in pajamas. ¡°Seren, you¡¯re still up?¡± Zachary walked over and gently pushed her draped hair to the back of her head. Her pretty face was fully exposed to him. ¡°I just woke up and heard the door open. I knew it was you.¡± Serenity helped Zachary take off his suit jacket as she spoke. She then asked him, ¡°Are you hungry? Should I make you supper?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve never had supper. I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll gain weight and then you¡¯ll despise me.¡± Serenity chuckled. ¡°I¡¯ll despise anyone but you. 3601184 The couple spoke softly and went into their room together. They were afraid of waking up their nana. Zachary even closed the door very carefully. Back in their room, Serenity helped Zachary hang up his suit jacket and went to get some clothes for him to take a shower. Zachary looked at her and smiled ear to ear. ¡°Why are you looking at me with that grin? You look like a fool.¡± Serenity stuffed the clothes into his arms and picked his cheek. ¡°Seeing you smile used to be the hardest thing.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary opened his arms and embraced Serenity. ¡°I was thinking how blessed I am to see you by my side when I wake up in the morning and have you get my clothes while listening to your soft voice when Ie home at night. I just couldn¡¯t help but smile.¡± He was grinning ear to ear. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity returned the embrace as she was also moved. Sheter pushed him away and said, ¡°Hurry up and take a shower. It¡¯s past midnight.¡± Zachary touched his face and asked for a sweet kiss. ¡°Honey, I¡¯ll go shower if you kiss me.¡± ¡°It¡¯s up to you if you don¡¯t want to shower, but don¡¯te to bed. You can sleep in the study,¡± Serenity said as she turned to leave. Zachary held her back, then she swirled and went back into his arms. She held his handsome face with both hands and gave him a peck on his lips. She looked lovingly at him and asked with a smile, ¡°Happy? Mr. York?¡± ¡°I like to hear you calling me babe.¡± ¡°Babe.¡± Zachary smiled dotingly and went to the shower as he was satisfied. Before closing the bathroom door, he said to Serenity, ¡°Honey, wait for me.¡± Chapter 1185 Chapter 1185 Chapter 1185 After Zachary closed the door, Serenity yawned and went back to bed. Shey down and closed her eyes to rest. She would wait for Zachary. She wanted to know how the investigation had been going with him, Clive, and Josh. There was also Duncan. Duncan must have gone to find Zachary after he left Brynfield. Zachary came out of the bathroom after some time. Serenity heard his footsteps and opened her eyes. She saw that he was half¨Cnaked and that his hair was still wet with water dripping down. Original from N?velDrama.Org. She sat up abruptly and rolled off the bed to fetch a clean towel. She sat the man, who did not dry his hair, in front of the dresser. Following that, she helped dry his hair like a mother and said, ¡°Why did you wash your hair sote at night? It¡¯s fine if you wash it, but you didn¡¯t even dry it with a towel. Men¡¯s hair is only that long, so it¡¯ll dry in no time if you use a dry towel. ¡°Even so, you¡¯rezy to dry it. Look at how wet the floor is now.¡± Zachary enjoyed his wife¡¯s thoughtfulness and let her nag him. Aftering home from a tiring day at work, he was delighted to hear her nags. He was definitely different from others. Other people would be afraid of being nagged by their wives, but he was the opposite. This was because Serenity was not naggy. She was also not at the age of being naggy. ¡°I brought you a set of pajamas, but you only wore the pants. Where¡¯s the shirt?¡± Zachary smiled with his eyes squinted. ¡°I¡¯m going to sleep soon and will be taking it off anyway, so I might as well not wear it and save the trouble.¡± Serenity smacked him lightly. After drying his hair for him, she still went into the bathroom to get his shirt. She forcefully put it on for him and said, ¡°You sometimes kick off the nket after you sleep, so you¡¯ll catch a cold if you don¡¯t wear a shirt.¡± On top of that, Zachary did not like to turn on the heater. It was because he wanted Serenity to move closer to him for warmth. Chapter 116S If the heater was on, she would only kick him away and would not ask for his embrace. ¡°Me? Kicking the nket? No way.¡± Zachary was doubtful. Serenity could not be bothered arguing with him. The next time she were to see him do it, she would take a video of it and show him the next day. He would believe it if there was evidence. ¡°How¡¯s the progress of the analysis done by you, my cousin, and Mr. Bucham? Could it be the Newmans?¡± Serenity cut to the chase. Zachary stood up and carried her like a princess. He reached the bed in a few steps and put her down on the bed. Hey down afterward. ¡°For now, we can¡¯t prove that the Newmans did it. The people Josh sent to keep an eye on Mr. and Mrs. Newman say that they¡¯ve only been begging people to get Ms. Carrie out and haven¡¯t been doing anything else. There also hasn¡¯t been any news from the people who are investigating their business from outside.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t think of anyone else besides them.¡± Serenity only had a serious beef with Mrs. Newman and her daughter. Zachary continued after a moment of silence, ¡°Seren, they might not be after you, but me.¡± He had offended too many people. Zachary embraced Serenity and added, ¡°But you don¡¯t have to worry. Do what you should do and treat today¡¯s incident as an ident. The police, Josh, and Duncan will continue looking into it. Duncan used to be a part of the underworld, so he has some connections there. ¡°If we think it¡¯s a scheme, they¡¯lle at us again after failing the first time. So, we do what we need to do and let them think that we¡¯re treating it as an ident and have let our guard down. When the time comes, they¡¯ll strike again. That way, we can collect evidence and find the mastermind. ¡°There are still people protecting you openly and covertly. Duncan is looking after your sister and Sonny. They won¡¯t make a move so soon since they¡¯ve failed once. They¡¯ll at least wait until the zoo incident dies down and nobody talks about it anymore before nning a second attempt.¡± Chapter 1186 Chapter 1186 Chapter 1186 There were too many people in the zoo, so it was easy to create a disturbance and take the opportunity to kidnap a child. On the other hand, everywhere was being monitored in the busy downtown. It would not be easy for the other party to make a move, and they would not dare to act rashly. Zachary guessed that the other party would at least wait for a few months before acting again. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Serenity said after some thought, ¡°You have a point. In that case, I¡¯ll treat the zoo incident as an ident and carry on with my normal life. I¡¯ll slowly lure the snake out of its hole.¡± Zachary kissed her forehead appreciatively. ¡°My wife is getting smarter.¡± ¡°Was I dumb before?¡± ¡°No, you¡¯ve always been smart. I like how smart you look.¡± He was trying hard to survive. ¡°I think I was too dumb to be fooled by you.¡± Zachary quickly stopped Serenity from talking further. After a kiss, he gently touched her lips and said in a soft voice, ¡°Honey, go to sleep. It¡¯ste.¡± ¡°Good night.¡± A passionate kiss appeased Serenity. She stopped bringing up the past and said good night to him before going back to sleep. Zachary put one hand on her waist and could not help but kiss her on the cheek again. before going to sleep with her. The couple slept soundly. On the contrary, Jessica, who was in a rented room somewhere, tossed and turned as she could not sleep. She dared not move too much every time she turned over, afraid that she would disturb Hank who was next to her. Every now and then, she checked her phone but did not receive any call or message from the stranger. She did not know if that unknown woman would make another move. It was not her fault that the n failed today, but she wondered if the other party would take it out on her farnily instead. Jessica had done what the other party asked her to do. It was Serenity who brought her bodyguards along. When the disturbance started, the bodyguards escorted them out of the aquarium. Lucas being carried away was to lure the enemy away and to create a diversion. Even so, Sonny was fine in the end. Jessica knew Sonny was almost kidnapped. She was relieved to know that he was fine in the end, but she was also afraid. She was often denounced for her ethics. After all, she was a mistress, and it was not honorable to interfere in someone else¡¯s marriage. Despite that, she was unwilling to make a move against Sonny. She would not have done it if the other party did not have control over her family. She was relieved that Sonny was fine. Jessica was just afraid because those people failed to kidnap Sonny, and Serenity was not lured to meet that unknown woman. What would happen to her and her family if the woman took it out on her? Sonny was protected by so many people. On the contrary, Jessica and her family were unprotected. Jessica turned around again but moved too much this time. She woke the man beside her. Without opening his eyes at all, Hank asked, ¡°Honey, why have you been turning and tossing all night long? You¡¯re like a fish being pan¨Cfried.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t sleep.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Hank opened his eyes to look at her. ¡°Is there something on your mind?¡± ¡°I was just frightened,¡± Jasmine answered him after turning around. ¡°So much for being Sonny¡¯s father. He almost had an ident, but you¡¯re sleeping like a pig.¡± When Hank learned that Sonny was almost kidnapped, he did not even react as much as Mrs. Brown¨C Sonny¡¯s grandmother¨Cdid. Chapter 1187 Chapter 1187 Chapter 1187 ¡°Also, Lucas was also taken away. If Serenity hadn¡¯t asked someone to go after those people, who knows what will happen to your sister now?¡± Chelsea kneeled and thanked Serenity after her son was lost and recovered. Even Jessica was shocked. A mother could do anything for her child. Hank said, ¡°Didn¡¯t you see Zachary bringing so many people to pick them up? Besides, Mr. Stone also brought a bunch of people. Sonny is being protected by so many people. As a father, I couldn¡¯t even reach him to care about him.¡± Jessica was speechless. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°On the other hand, Lucas was frightened, and so was my sister. Not only my sister but all of us were terrified.¡± Hank did not have a good rtionship with his sistertely, but Lucas was his nephew, after all. If he had not brought up the trip to the zoo, his mother would not have asked his sister to bring Lucas along, and the ident would not have happened. Fortunately, Lucas was saved. Otherwise, Hank would feel guilty about it. A family who lost a child would be broken. ¡°In the future, it¡¯s better not to bring kids to crowded ces. Even if they go to such a ce, they must be watched over. Especially when Sonny and Lucas are young and active. They don¡¯t know what danger is.¡± Hank was slow to feel frightened when he thought about the zoo incident. It was not that he did not care about Sonny. It was just that too many people cared about Sonny, whereas he was left out as his father. In fact, Hank was furious deep down. Sonny was his son, and yet he could not do anything for him as his father. At that time, he was upied with chasing the traffickers to save his nephew. He did not think that his son was also in trouble. Luckily, Serenity was there to save the day. Otherwise Hank med himself as well for being a useless father. ¡°The zoo is too huge. If the kids want to y outside in the future, they can just go to small parks.¡± Jessica said, ¡°That was just an ident. We can¡¯t stop the kids from ying outside just because an ident took ce. We just have to keep a good eye on them in the future.¡± Charter 1583 Since the n failed once, it would be difficult to kidnap Sonny again next time. Even the Browns had learned their lesson and were nning not to bring the kids to crowded ces. Presumably, nothing would happen again. Jessica was anxious but did not show it. ¡°Don¡¯t think so much. It¡¯s all in the past. Go to sleep now. Mom said to buy some things. tomorrow and thank Serenity at Wiltspoon School. There might still be conflict between us, but she indeed saved Lucas, so we ought to thank her for it.¡± Hank liked to say bad things about Serenity in the past. Now, he was praising her for being a good person and their family¡¯s savior. He wanted very badly to worship Serenity as a goddess and pay her respect. ¡°Does she want us to do it?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, my sister is paying for everything and won¡¯t make us pay. We just have to go with her.¡± Hank knew his wife did not get along well with his sister. He yawned and said, ¡°Honey, you and my sister shouldn¡¯t always be at loggerheads. It¡¯s hard for me as I¡¯m caught in between. One is my sister, who¡¯s the only sibling in my life; the other is my wife, who¡¯s going to live with me for the rest of my life. It frustrates me to see you argue with each other all the time.¡± ¡°That¡¯s because your mom and sister joined hands to bully me. You¡¯re aware that I only fought back because they bullied me first.¡± Hank responded, ¡°They¡¯re my sister and mother. Can¡¯t you tolerate them a little for my sake? It wasn¡¯t easy for my parents to raise me. If you love me, tolerate my mom. As for my sister, she¡¯s being too much. I¡¯ll kick her back home.¡± Jessica¡¯s face turned red with anger. Chapter 1188 Chapter 1188 Chapter 1188 Jessica responded, ¡°It wasn¡¯t easy for your parents to raise you, but it was easy for mine to raise me? On what basis are you asking me to tolerate them? Your mom never raised me, and she always targets me. She says that I¡¯m not as good as Liberty and keepsparing me to her. Am I not allowed to be mad? ¡°She always tells me how good Liberty is and how bad I am. She says that I don¡¯t know how to live and always order takeouts instead of cooking at home. I¡¯m usually busy too. She doesn¡¯t cook even though she has nothing to do at home, and she expects me to cook for her when I¡¯m home. Isn¡¯t that bullying? ¡°When I first went to your house, your mom treated me very well, and so did your sister. I only kept talking about Liberty to your sister and mom because I thought she was bad at handling her rtionship with your mom. Now, I realize that they¡¯re just too good at acting and managed to fool me as well.¡± What was more, Jessica got herself into this situation herself. ¡°So much for thinking that I was different. In the end¡­¡± The treatments given to her as a wife and a lover were different. ¡°And you, you used to be obedient to me. What about now?¡± Hank coaxed her, ¡°Am I not now? Back then, I split everything evenly with Liberty. Sonny¡¯s milk powder cost 350 dors, but I only gave her 175 dors, which was my share. I was calctive about everything with her. ¡°As soon as we got married, I gave you full financial power. Is that not enough? I also added your name to the house deed. I gave you my heart.¡± Hank could not stop halfway now. After all, he and Jessica had just gotten their marriage license and had not held their wedding. He could not divorce her, could he? Besides, he had feelings for Jessica. She was several years younger than him and was still very young. His feelings for her were still fresh. Did Hank regret it? Of course, he did, but he dared not let Jessica know it. He thought he paid a huge price when he and Liberty divorced. Had he known that he would be in this situation, he would not have divorced. Unfortunately, Liberty insisted on divorcing after knowing that he cheated on her. She did not give him a chance to redeem himself. Now, Hank¡¯s remarriage was a mess. On the other hand, Liberty was living a better life after their divorce. Not only did she open a breakfast shop, but she also seeded in losing weight. Additionally, Duncan¨Ca CEO- was pursuing her¡­ Her life seemed to have be more wonderful. Unfortunately, it had nothing to do with Hank. Hank felt ufortable thinking that Liberty might be a missus of the Lewises after marrying into the family. On second thought, he felt that it was impossible. The Lewises were a top¨Css wealthy family. Even though Duncan was disfigured and slightly old, it would still be his first marriage. Presumably, the elders in his family would not agree to him marrying a divorcee like Liberty. Furthermore, Liberty did not have feelings for Duncan that way. Hank understood Liberty as they had known each other for over a decade. He could tell that Liberty did not have romantic feelings for Duncan. ¡°My mom keepsparing you to Liberty to infuriate you on purpose. Just ignore her. I told her to not bring up Liberty in front of you anymore.¡± Hank and Liberty divorced because of him, but it was also partly because of his mother and sister. ¡°Zachary took revenge on us and made us lose our jobs. If we hadn¡¯t lost our jobs, my mom would show off in front of Liberty. Honey, I¡¯m going to be an Uber driver in two days to earn money. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll treat you well and let you live a good life now that you¡¯re married to me.¡± Under his coaxing and persuasion, Jessica¡¯s anger subsided.Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Chapter 1189 Chapter 1189 Chapter 1189 Jasmine took so much effort to snatch Hank away from Liberty and became the missus. She would go on no matter how difficult the road was. Otherwise, she would be seen as a joke by Liberty. Liberty would say that it was karma! ¡°Go to sleep and stop turning and tossing in bed. Lucas isn¡¯t your son. My sister might not even act like you. You¡¯re just his aunt, and yet you¡¯re so frightened that you can¡¯t sleep.¡± Hank embraced Jessica and yawned. He closed his eyes and said, ¡°I¡¯m so sleepy.¡± Jasmine cursed internally. She was not acting like this because of Lucas. Lucas was a spoiled brat. He ruined a lot of her skincare and makeup, so she hated him. very much. She was flustered to see Lucas being carried away, but she was not worried at all. In fact, she was quite pleased. Serenity and her sister were just kind¨Chearted and generous to be willing to send people to save Lucas. Jessica thought that she would not save Lucas if it were her. It would be best if he was abducted. Chelsea would not be able to act arrogantly anymore. Hank fell asleep again very quickly. Jessica could not tell the truth, so she could only hold it in. After finally falling asleep, she kept having nightmares. She dreamed of Sonny being hurt. after being kidnapped by bad people. His legs were crippled, and he was thrown to beg on the streets. After that, she dreamed that her family was dead and that their corpses were lined up in a row¡­. Rumbling thunder was heard as spring rain poured down on earth. Serenity was awakened by the sound of thunder. Zachary also got up when she did. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Babe, sleep a while more. You came hometest night. I¡¯ll go make breakfast and wake. you up when it¡¯s ready.¡± Serenity walked to the window and drew the curtains to look outside. It was still raining, so she closed the curtains again. She turned to say to Zachary, ¡°The rain hasn¡¯t stopped, so you can¡¯t do your morning run. Go back to sleep.¡± Coming homete and waking up early was indeed tiring. Chapter 1189 2/2 Zacharyy on the bed again and covered himself with the nket. It was rare for him toze in bed. Seeing as he went back to sleep, Serenity went to make breakfast. Grandma May was already up. She was still doing yoga on the balcony. ¡°Nana, good morning.¡± ¡°Good morning.¡± ¡°Nana, it¡¯s raining outside. Will the rain stter inside?¡± Serenity went out to see. The spring rain had been going on for a long time, but it was not too heavy. The balcony was slightly wet, but it did not affect Grandma May from doing yoga. ¡°It doesn¡¯t affect me.¡± Grandma May did not stop. Serenity smile. ¡°Nana, go on with your yoga. I¡¯ll go make breakfast. What do you fancy today?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll eat whatever you make as long as it¡¯s not hard to chew. I¡¯m old and can¡¯t chew well.¡± Serenity hummed and went into the kitchen. An hour or soter. The three of them were having breakfast at the dining table. Grandma May said to Zachary, ¡°Zack, I feel that you and Seren¡¯s house is too quiet. ¡°I¡¯ll ask Mrs. Lane to bring Snowball and the others backter. Your house will be livelier then.¡± The three pets gifted by Zachary to Serenity were still being taken care of at the hilltop vi. Most of the time, it was Mrs. Lane who was looking after them. Serenity responded with a smile, ¡°I almost forgot about those three little ones.¡± Grandma May mumbled, ¡°I¡¯d like a little girl as a pet.¡± The young couple pretended not to hear her. Chapter 1190 Chapter 1190 Chapter 1190 Grandma May only muttered for a while. She did not continue the topic. ¡°Babe, ask Mrs. Lane to drive the car you gave me during Valentine¡¯s. It¡¯s too inconvenient to go out without a car,¡± Serenity suggested. ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary agreed with a smile. He finally gave his wife a Valentine¡¯s gift. Grandma May said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, this is how it should be. Your man earns money for you to spend, so spend as much as you want. The more you spend, the happier he¡¯ll be, and the more motivated he¡¯ll be to earn more money. If you don¡¯t spend enough, the money he earns is just a string of numbers to him. He doesn¡¯t feel anything and won¡¯t feel aplished by looking at them.¡± Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Nana, I¡¯m not short of money to spend.¡± Zachary often transferred money into the card for her daily spending. She had almost finished her savings, but she could not finish spending the money from Zachary no matter what. Besides, she was not a reckless spender. Everything she wore was taken care of by Zachary. Now, even her skincare and makeup were bought by him. If Serenity went shopping, she would not know what she should buy as she did notck anything at the moment. ¡°Nana, I wanted to give Seren my entire fortune, but she refused to ept it.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Grandma May said that Serenity was silly. She said that if Serenity epted Zachary¡¯s fortune, she would be Wiltspoon¡¯s richest woman. Why would she need to run a bookstore and invest? She only needed to squeeze everything out of Zachary. Zachary was dumbfounded. After breakfast, Zachary and Serenity went to All You Can Eat to pick Sonny up. Following that, Zachary sent his wife to the bookstore before going to work. Meanwhile, Mrs. Newman was pointing and cursing at Camryn in their vi. Regardless of what her mother said, Camryn finished her toast and cereal calmly, then cleaned up the table and washed the dishes in the kitchen. Her breakfast had always been very simple. She always had toast and cereal. The Newmans hired a cook as well, but the nutritious breakfast prepared by the cook had nothing to do with Camryn. It was good enough that she was given toast and cereal. Camryn could not see and could not make food for herself. As such, she ate whatever she was given and was not given any choices. ¡°Useless trash. All you do is eat and drink while your sister is suffering. You¡¯re not worried and anxious at all, and you¡¯re eating and sleeping well. Why did I give birth to a heartless daughter like you? I might as well have strangled you to death as soon as you were born.¡± Mrs. Newman was in a bad mood. Since her precious daughter was detained, she was so heartbroken that she could not sleep all night long. One who did not sleep well would not be in good spirits and would have a bad mood. That was why Mrs. Newman took it out on Camryn. ¡°Honey.¡± Mr. Newman put down his fork and knife. He helplessly said to his wife, ¡°You¡¯ve been scolding her for the whole morning. You might not be tired from scolding, but I¡¯m tired from listening. This has nothing to do with Camryn, so why are you scolding her?¡± ¡°How does it have nothing to do with her? If not for her, would Carrie and that woman from the Hunts be enemies? Would Carrie have done something like that? It was all because of her!¡± After washing the dishes in the kitchen, Camryn walked out silently and faced Mr. Newman. She said indifferently, ¡°Uncle, I¡¯m going to the store.¡± Mr. Newman hummed and responded, ¡°Go ahead. Let the driver drop you off. It¡¯s raining outside.¡± ¡°A driver? She has always gone to the store by herself. She¡¯s not allowed to be dropped off!¡± Mrs. Newman disallowed Camryn from using the family¡¯s driver. Camryn did not say anything. She went to take her walking stick and then took an umbre from where they were stored. She walked out of the house in silence. She had lived in this vi for over 20 years. Even though she was blind, she could move around with ease. ¡°D*mn that blind girl. Why isn¡¯t she the one in trouble?¡± Mrs. Newman cursed again after Camryn left. Chapter 1191 Chapter 1191 Chapter 1191 ¡°Honey, you must think of a way to save Carrie. She has never been treated roughly before.¡± Mrs. Newman was worried about her younger daughter. She had not even been that worried about her son, who was still in high school. However, her son went to a boarding school and was in his senior year. He could only return home once a month, so she only had to transfer money to her son¡¯s card. Her son was much more mature than her daughter, but she did not like that he was protective of his elder sister, Camryn. Whenever Mrs. Newman¡¯s son was at home, she had to be gentler toward Camryn to prevent her son from quarreling with her. ¡°Carrie is just in detention for fifteen days. She¡¯ll be out when the days are up. We should be worried about Mrs. York suing her.¡± Mr. Newman sighed. ¡°We have to apologize to them.¡± He was also anxious that his cherished daughter had caused trouble. However, unlike his wife who simply thought of getting their daughter out, he thought further ahead. ¡°It¡¯s not like we haven¡¯t already apologized. I even asked Camryn to go to Hunt¡¯s store to beg for forgiveness. It¡¯s useless. Hunt is intentionally getting Carrie into jail. I¡¯m already heartbroken by the fifteen days of detention. If Hunt files awsuit and a sentence is given Mrs. Newman¡¯s eyes reddened as she spoke. After a moment of silence, Mr. Newman said, ¡°If so, we can only hire the bestwyer for Carrie and fight for a light sentence. Carrie¡¯s action might be counted as a criminal offense ¡­ You should refrain from doing anything for now. ¡°A child kidnapping urred in Wiltspoon Zoo yesterday. Even Mrs. York¡¯s nephew almost got kidnapped. This isn¡¯t your doing, right?¡± Mr. Newman understood his wife¡¯s character. He reminded her, ¡°Don¡¯t act rashly. Think about our daughter. This is Wiltspoon. This territory belongs to the Yorks, Stones, and Buchams. There¡¯s also the Lewis family. If those four wealthy families work together, you won¡¯t even stand a chance.¡± Mrs. Newman wiped her tears and said, ¡°I¡¯m not in the mood to do anything right now. I just want to get my daughter out.¡± ¡°It¡¯s best that you don¡¯t do anything behind my back. If you did, you have to inform me so that it¡¯s easier for me to deal with the aftermath. Be extra careful whenever you head out too. The Bucham family excels in collecting information. Zachary might have already sent the Buchams¡® people to keep an eye on us.¡± Chapter 1191 2/2 Mr. Newman was more aware of the four wealthy families¡® powerpared to Mrs. Newman. ¡°Got it.¡± Mrs. Newman promised. Camryn did not know what her stepfather and mother discussed after she left. She exited the vi with an umbre and walked toward the gates slowly. Their family had a driver, but the driver did not serve her. She had no choice but to walk and take a bus to the flower store herself. Luckily, she was familiar with that path as she traversed it every day. Sometimes, she would even meet neighbors who would give her a ride. All the neighbors knew about Camryn¡¯s misfortune. Everyone pitied her but could do nothing to help her. After all, the person who mistreated her was her biological daughter. Some people had advised Mrs. Newman that she should not treat her elder daughter like that, no matter how biased she was toward her younger children. Her eldest was the only child of Mrs. Newman¡¯s deceased ex¨Chusband. Mrs. Newman would not listen. It was useless no matter how other people or even her family advised her. She simply did not like Camryn. It was to the point she wanted Camryn to die. Honk, honk. The sound of a car horn red behind Camryn. She continued walking calmly. She knew she was walking by the roadside and would not be blocking others¡® way. If it were unfamiliar surroundings, she might have panicked and walked in the wrong. direction or taken the wrong way. However, she used that road every day and knew it well. She could even touch the nts by the roadside if she stretched her hand. How could she be blocking someone¡¯s way? The person who was honking was probably reminding someone else to give way. Honk, honk. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. The horn continued ring. It got closer. Camryn stopped. After touching the roadside bushes, she moved inside and stayed close to the bushes. She thought she would not be blocking anyone¡¯s way if she did that. The car stopped beside her. Chapter 1192 Chapter 1192 Chapter 1192 Camryn faced the car and tried to see who parked the car. Unfortunately, it was still dark in front of her, with only a glimmer of light. That faint light was not enough for her to see things clearly. The light felt so close yet so far. ¡°Do you still walk to the store every day?¡± A raspy voice could be heard. Camryn recognized it. It was Callum¡¯s voice. Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Callum was tricked into sending Camryn back to her store once by his sister¨Cinw. When she thanked him and asked for his name, he did not hide his identity like his brother and told her that he was the young master of Yorks. ¡°Mr. York.¡± After finding out it was Callum, Camryn showed her signature smile. ¡°Does the Newman family not have a driver?¡± ¡°The Newman family does. I don¡¯t.¡± Callum pressed his lips together. The wife candidate his nana chose for him was a blind and pitiful girl. She lost her dad and was not loved by her mother. ¡°Get on. I¡¯ll give you a ride to the store.¡± Camryn did not move. She asked Callum, ¡°Why are you here, Mr. York?¡± After a moment of silence, Callum said, ¡°I just remembered that I have a vi here, so I came over for a short stay.¡± Camryn said, ¡°You must own many houses¡­¡± The neighborhood the Newmans lived in was famous in Wiltspoon. Many wealthy people had houses there. Callum said, ¡°I do own quite a few houses, but I never really stayed in them after buying them. If I remember the house, I¡¯ll stay there for several days. If I don¡¯t, it¡¯ll just be left there. I can sell the house when its price increases and earn money. ¡°Get in. It¡¯s raining. Even if you walk out of the neighborhood, catching a bus will be hard.¡± Callum asked Camryn to get in the car. ¡°I¡¯m going to your flower shop to buy flowers anyway.¡± Camryn hesitated for a moment before she decided to get in his car. Chapter 1192 27 Although she and Callum had only met each other a few times before¨Cwait, it was him who had seen her several times. She had not seen him before and did not know what he looked like. Camryn heard the young masters of the York family were handsome. She thought he would be too. She walked toward Callum¡¯s car while feeling with her hands. She managed to touch the door handle and pulled the door open. After getting into the car, she ced the closed umbre by her feet. ¡°Put on your seatbelt.¡± Callum spoke again. Camryn was stunned. She actually got into the passenger seat. She quickly regained herposure. She felt around for the seatbelt, then pulled and fastened it. Callum watched her as she did everything. He did not help her at all. He started the car and drove Camryn out of the neighborhood toward her flower shop. On the way, Callum asked, ¡°Do you head out at this time every day?¡± ¡°Mhm.¡± ¡°You can wait at the location you hopped on ea Chapter 1192 Camryn faced the car and tried to see who parked the car. Unfortunately, it was still dark in front of her, with only a glimmer of light. That faint light was not enough for her to see things clearly. The light felt so close yet so far. ¡°Do you still walk to the store every day?¡± A raspy voice could be heard. Camryn recognized it. It was Callum¡¯s voice. Callum was tricked into sending Camryn back to her store once by his sister¨Cinw. When she thanked him and asked for his name, he did not hide his identity like his brother and told her that he was the young master of Yorks. ¡°Mr. York.¡± After finding out it was Callum, Camryn showed her signature smile. ¡°Does the Newman family not have a driver?¡± ¡°The Newman family does. I don¡¯t.¡± Callum pressed his lips together. The wife candidate his nana chose for him was a blind and pitiful girl. She lost her dad and was not loved by her mother. ¡°Get on. I¡¯ll give you a ride to the store.¡± Camryn did not move. She asked Callum, ¡°Why are you here, Mr. York?¡± After a moment of silence, Callum said, ¡°I just remembered that I have a vi here, so I came over for a short stay.¡± Camryn said, ¡°You must own many houses¡­¡± The neighborhood the Newmans lived in was famous in Wiltspoon. Many wealthy people had houses there. Callum said, ¡°I do own quite a few houses, but I never really stayed in them after buying them. If I remember the house, I¡¯ll stay there for several days. If I don¡¯t, it¡¯ll just be left there. I can sell the house when its price increases and earn money. ¡°Get in. It¡¯s raining. Even if you walk out of the neighborhood, catching a bus will be hard.¡± Callum asked Camryn to get in the car. ¡°I¡¯m going to your flower shop to buy flowers anyway.¡± Camryn hesitated for a moment before she decided to get in his car. Chapter 1192 27 Although she and Callum had only met each other a few times before¨Cwait, it was him who had seen her several times. She had not seen him before and did not know what he looked like. Camryn heard the young masters of the York family were handsome. She thought he would be too. She walked toward Callum¡¯s car while feeling with her hands. She managed to touch the door handle and pulled the door open. After getting into the car, she ced the closed umbre by her feet. ¡°Put on your seatbelt.¡± Callum spoke again. Camryn was stunned. She actually got into the passenger seat. She quickly regained herposure. She felt around for the seatbelt, then pulled and fastened it. Callum watched her as she did everything. He did not help her at all. He started the car and drove Camryn out of the neighborhood toward her flower shop. On the way, Callum asked, ¡°Do you head out at this time every day?¡± ¡°Mhm.¡± ¡°You can wait at the location you hopped on earlier from now on. I¡¯ll give you a ride.¡± Camryn said quickly, ¡°Thank you, Mr. York, but there¡¯s no need for that. If it doesn¡¯t rain, I can catch a bus easily.¡± He was neither a rtive nor a friend. She would not dare hitch a ride in Mr. York¡¯s car to work every day. rlier from now on. I¡¯ll give you a ride.¡± Camryn said quickly, ¡°Thank you, Mr. York, but there¡¯s no need for that. If it doesn¡¯t rain, I can catch a bus easily.¡± He was neither a rtive nor a friend. She would not dare hitch a ride in Mr. York¡¯s car to work every day. Chapter 1193 Chapter 1193 Chapter 1193 Callum turned to nce at her and said, ¡°You¡¯re blind. You can¡¯t wave the bus down even if it passes by.¡± Camryn replied, ¡°The security guards at the main entrance are very helpful. They would wave down the bus for me every day and watch me get on.¡± Callum did not say a word. They did not know each other well, after all. Callum initially did not intend to make a move so fast. After being tricked by his sister¨Cin-w, he started pursuing Camryn passively so that his brother and sister¨Cinw would not watch him make a fool of himself. His nana only gave him the basic information. He knew nothing else. Without understanding and familiarity, there was nothing much to talk about. One of them drove attentively, while the other paid attention to the music ying in the car along the way. The car stopped when they arrived at Spring Blossoms. Callum turned toward Camryn and said, ¡°Ms. Newman, we¡¯ve arrived at your flower shop.¡± She replied okay and unfastened the seatbelt. Next, she bent over to take her umbre beside her feet and felt around with her hands to open the door. She got out of the car carefully and opened the umbre. However, since she took the car, she did not know which direction she was facing. She was confused as she stood with the umbre over her head. Blind people could only move freely around ces they were familiar with. Their lifestyle usually would not change. Once it did, they would lose their sense of direction. Camryn usually traveled by bus and got off at a nearby bus stop. She had memorized the direction she needed to go after getting off and the number of steps she had to walk. Usually, nothing would go wrong. However, Callum sent her to the flower shop today. She did not know where he parked his car. Did she have to turn left or right or go straight after getting off? Camryn calmed down after being flustered for a moment. She tried walking straight. She bumped into a person after taking a few steps. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. Sorry.¡± She quickly apologized. 2/2 Chapter 1193 ¡°Turn right and walk straight. Your shop¡¯s entrance will be there.¡± Callum kindly gave Camryn directions. The person she bumped into just now was not a stranger but Callum, who had walked around the car and initially wanted to enter the shop with her. Camryn had been going in the wrong direction. She bumped into Callum by going straight. She would have walked into another store if she had not bumped into him and continued straight instead. ¡°Thank you.¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. With Callum¡¯s directions, Camryn walked to her store¡¯s entrance smoothly. She fished a key from her pocket and ced her hand on the doorknob. After feeling it, she inserted the key and opened the door. Callum noticed that she only had one key. That way, she would not be confused by too many keys. Callum simply stood at the side and did not lend a hand. He tested her before and confirmed that Camryn was still blind. He wanted to know what her daily life was like. Callum admitted that he was curious as it was his first time interacting with a blind person. Well, it was pure curiosity. He had not started wooing her seriously. She would probably chase him out with her white cane if he were to express his intent to woo her. Camryn did not expect Callum to help her anyway. After opening the lock, she bent down and pushed the shutter up. The shutter did not slide up completely. She entered the store unhurriedly and took a long stick. Then, she used the stick to push the shutter up fully. Chapter 1194 Chapter 1194 Chapter 1194 2 ¡°You don¡¯t seem like a blind person when you do all these things, Ms. Newman.¡± Camryn ced the stick back in its original position. She said indifferently, ¡°I¡¯ve gotten used to it. I¡¯ve been running this flower shop for years and doing the same daily routine. I can do it by instinct since I¡¯m used to it.¡± After opening the door, Camryn put down her cane and started moving potted nts that were taking up space outside skillfully. ¡°What flowers do you want to buy today, Mr. York?¡± Camryn asked Callum as she moved the flowers. ¡°You can take your time and look around.¡± After watching her move several flowerpots, Callum finally decided not to be a spectator and went forward to help her. He moved all the potted nts that needed to be ced at the flower shop¡¯s entrance. The name of each flower was on every flowerpot. However, the names were not written on paper but on wood. Each flower¡¯s name was carved on a wooden sign, which enabled Camryn to identify the flower her customers were interested in by touching the engraving on the wooden sign. ¡°It¡¯s not very convenient for you to run a business with impaired vision.¡± ¡°I have to do it even if it¡¯s inconvenient. I have to survive.¡± Camryn¡¯s tone was always calm and indifferent. Callum looked toward her. Her features were intricate, but her face was a little too tiny. On top of that, she wore arge pair of sunsses, making her face even look smaller. She was born into an affluent family, but her life was as ordinary as it could get. She said she would not be able to survive if she did not have a business. Did the Newman family not give her any living expenses? ¡°Is Mrs. Newman your biological mother?¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Callum could not resist asking Camryn. After a moment of silence, she said, ¡°I¡¯d rather she wasn¡¯t my biological mother. Unfortunately, she is.¡± ¡°Why is she treating you so badly despite being your biological mother?¡± The eldest daughter of the Newman family was like an invisible being who could not evenpare to the servants in the house. That was a fact that everyone in that neighborhood knew. Callum could hear things about Camryn not being favored without deliberately asking around about it. Camryn walked to a table. There was an electric kettle and a teapot on the table. She took the electric kettle into the pantry, filled it with water, and started boiling water. ¡°Ms. Newman, there¡¯s no need to make me tea. I don¡¯t like drinking tea.¡± Callum said after noticing Camryn¡¯s intentions. She did not stop her movements. She took the teapot and washed it in the pantry before cing it back. She said calmly, ¡°We¡¯ll prepare tea for our regrs sometimes. When my employeese to work, they¡¯ll make the tea.¡± Camryn could prepare tea with her instincts. However, she would add too much water and end up spilling it everywhere. Therefore, she would not make tea unless it was necessary. She would wait until her employees came to work to make it. ¡°You might find it unbelievable because you came from a happy family, Mr. York. Actually ¡­ not all parents will love their children. On the other hand, some parents do, but there¡¯s just one child they dislike who can¡¯t obtain their affection.¡± It was not that her mother preferred boys over girls. Carrie was simply her mother¡¯s favorite child and precious sweetheart. Her younger brother was not even favored as much as Carrie. Maybe it was because he treated her well. Camryn¡¯s younger brother would protect her as long as he was home. He would have frequent quarrels with their mother and Carrie for her sake. Carrie would oftenin to her younger brother. They were siblings from the same parents, but why was he nicer to Camryn, who was born from a different father? Chapter 1195 Chapter 1195 Chapter 1195 Carrie could not stand her brother treating Camryn well. She asked Mrs. Newman to send him to a boarding school since he started first grade to reduce the time he stayed at home. Even so, he still treated Camryn better. Camryn¡¯s brother, who was younger than her by nine years, had always felt guilty. He med himself for not being able to get their parents to send her to the hospital when she was sick while he was in school. It had caused her to lose her sight. In that family, Camryn had only felt the warmth of family from her brother. Callum listened to her saying the most heartbreaking words with a calm tone. He strangely felt sorry for her. It could be due to him knowing she was the wife his nana had chosen for him from the start. Callum was treating Camryn as his woman. ¡°Happiness wille after hard times,¡± Callum said with a deep, gentle voice. Camryn smiled at him. ¡°You don¡¯t have to feel sorry for me, Mr. York. They don¡¯t treat me well, but they¡¯ve raised me until this age.¡± Although they did almost take her life¡­ ¡°Have you chosen the flowers you want to buy, Mr. York?¡± Camryn changed the topic. She was not close to Callum and did not want to discuss her private matters with him. ¡°Since I gave you a ride to work, you should give me a bouquet.¡± Camryn was speechless. She did not expect Callum to ask her for a bouquet in return for his help. She had not given a bouquet to someone of the opposite gender before. After thinking about it, Camryn went to get some flowers. She was going to wrap a bouquet for him. ¡°I want a bouquet of red roses with baby breaths.¡± Camryn stayed silent for a moment. Then, she said, ¡°I don¡¯t think it¡¯s suitable to have roses in the bouquet I¡¯m giving you, Mr. York.¡± ¡°My sister¨Cinw bought a bouquet of roses from you previously and gave it to my brother. He showed it off in front of me.¡± ¡°So you want me to give you a bouquet of roses to show off as well?¡± Callum answered with a question. ¡°Can¡¯t I do that?¡± Camryn was his chosen wife. It was almost certain that he would marry her. If he showed off the bouquet given by his wife in thepany, it could even drive off her rivals indirectly. As a young master of the York family, Callum had many admirers. However, he always ignored them, just like his brother did. He never epted or made any promises and preserved his moral integrity. His nana had told them not to mess with girls and hurt them if they did not intend to marry them. The York brothers were doubly cautious when it came to love. ¡°If you want to be lovey¨Cdovey, you can buy a bouquet of roses from me and show off in yourpany after you get a girlfriend or wife.¡± Callum smiled. ¡°Okay. I admit that my request was a lot. You can design the bouquet as you like, Ms. Newman. Just make sure it¡¯s not flowers suited for graves.¡± Camryn was speechless. She then proceeded to prepare a bouquet based on her idea. She handed it over to him after wrapping it. Callum had never given flowers to a girl before. He did not understand thenguage of flowers. He only knew that roses symbolized love.Content rights by N?velDr//ama.Org. Chapter 1196 Chapter 1196 Chapter 1196 Callum and Camryn had not even started dating. Well, he had started, but she did not know about it. It was understandable that she refused to give him roses. ¡°The flowers are pretty. Thank you for the bouquet, Ms. Newman.¡± Callum epted the flowers and admired them. After thanking Camryn, he said to her while holding the bouquet, ¡°I¡¯ll head to work now, Ms. Newman.¡± Callum walked out of the store and went to his car. He opened the passenger¡¯s seat door and ced the bouquet on the seat. He turned to nce at Camryn before getting in the car and driving away. Camryn listened to the sounds at the entrance. She let out a breath of relief when she heard the sound of a car engine starting. Original from N?velDrama.Org. She felt like Mr. York was targeting her. Not targeting, to be exact, but he seemed interested in her. Maybe he had never seen a blind person. Camryn never thought Callum would fall for her. She was blind, after all. Callum brought the bouquet Camryn gave him to York Corporation. After getting out of the car, he walked into the office building with the bouquet, showing off. He would greet others first whenever he saw someone. York Corporation¡¯s employees thought, ¡®Is the COO being possessed by a flower fairy? He¡¯s holding the bouquet and smiling brighter than the flowers.¡± Callum even went to his brother¡¯s office on purpose. Zachary raised his head and saw his brother walking in with a bouquet and smiling eyes. After Callum sat down, Zachary teased him, ¡°Have you made a move? Didn¡¯t you say you refused to submit? You even talked to Kevin about going to Archvale to escape marriage.¡± Kevin¡¯s rejection of marriage was the strongest. He thought his nana was biased. She chose a tomboy for him. Hayden looked more masculine compared to him. After spending a considerable amount of money getting Josh to dig deep into obtaining Hayden¡¯s information, Kevin aggrievedlyined to Zachary about their nana¡¯s biased behavior. Kevin nagged about getting Callum to go to Archvale together to escape marriage and make their nana regret it. In the end, Grandma May gave him an air ticket and his passport to go overseas. However, Kevin was just all talk. He would not actually run to Archvale, go under the sun, and get himself tanned. He would be sad if he turned a shade darker. Chapter 1196 212 After that, Kevin only daredin in private to Callum. Zachary only overheard a few things because he had good hearing. ¡°I didn¡¯t say I wouldn¡¯t submit. Nana arranged all of this. We can¡¯t possibly escape. If only you had refused to follow instructions and set a precedent for us, then we could¡¯ve done the same.¡± Callum ced the bouquet on the table. ¡°Brother, my future wife gave me this bouquet. It¡¯s pretty, right?¡± ¡°You¡¯re even calling her your wife. You¡¯re right on track, yet you¡¯re ming me? I wanted to hang in there too, but I was fighting alone and couldn¡¯t put up a defense. You two, as my brothers, even laughed at my misery. Now that Nana¡¯s targeting you two, you¡¯re ming me for not defying her orders.¡± Callum said honestly, ¡°Well, I was merely a spectator since the target wasn¡¯t me yet.¡± Zachary was speechless. His younger brothers were all useless. Everything was fine to them as long as it was their brother in trouble and not them. ¡°The flowers your sister¨Cinw gave me were roses. Ms. Newman gave you a mixture of flowers. It¡¯s just a messy mix¨Cand¨Cmatch, yet you brought it to the office and showed it off.¡± They have been brothers for thirty years¨CZachary knew Callum¡¯s intentions well. ¡°It¡¯s pretty. I think Camryn matched the flowers well. It¡¯s obvious that she¡¯s skilled in flower arrangements.¡± Zachary remained silent. The bouquet Camryn made was indeed beautiful. It wasvish but not tacky. ¡°Is she really blind?¡± Callum replied in the affirmative. ¡°She can¡¯t see right now but I think she¡¯ll be able to recover her eyesight in the future. Zack, do you know who the best ophthalmologist is? Can you introduce a few of them to me to give her a checkup and see if she can be cured?¡± Zachary said, ¡°I don¡¯t know any good ophthalmologists, but I know where the rumored genius doctor appears. There might be hope if we get the genius doctor to check on Ms. Newman.¡± Chapter 1197 Chapter 1197 Chapter 1197 Callum asked curiously, ¡°The rumored genius doctor? Can that person heal eyes?¡± ¡°Of course a genius doctor can treat anything Otherwise, why will that person be called a genius?¡± Callum asked again, ¡°Where¡¯s the genius doctor? I¡¯ll have people invite him over.¡± ¡°He used to hang around FC Manor in Annenburg, but he hasn¡¯t been theretely. I heard the genius doctor¡¯s student is close to Lee but isn¡¯t on good terms with Tim. You can ask Remy about it. ¡°The student¡¯sst name is Carden. She¡¯s a great woman. She had traveled with Mrs. Lafayette to Meadspring and helped the Lafayette family eliminate their greatest enemy in the past. She fights well, and her medical skill is as good as her fighting. Oh, by the way, she¡¯s an expert in using poison.¡± Despite that, Ms. Carden was a doctor and prioritized saving people. Although she was good at using poison, she would not use it to harm others. ¡°A person as great as that must be hard to invite.¡± Zachary said, ¡°It¡¯s fine as long as you¡¯re sincere. Even if you fail the first time, you can try for second, third, or countless more times. However, the genius doctor is pretty much retired. It¡¯s mostly his student, Dr. Carden, meeting and treating the patients. ¡°Callum, if you want to hire the genius doctor to cure Ms. Newman¡¯s eyes, you have to find out whether she turned blind due to an illness or poisoning by someone. Is her living environment safe now?¡± Callum said, ¡°Serenity said that she turned blind due to an illness.¡± Zachary looked at his younger brother. Callum had not truly cared about Ms. Newman¨Chet was simply curious and found the whole situation refreshing. If he cared about her, he would get to know her better and try digging into the secrets she hid in her heart. Since it was Callum¡¯s marriage, Zachary could not speak his thoughts. He would let Callum realize it gradually and face the obstacles. He, too, had faced many obstacles to have the happy life he had now with Serenity. ¡°I¡¯ll ask Mr. Johnson about it when I meet him another day. I¡¯ll go and work now, Zack.¡± After showing off his bouquet to his elder brother, Callum did not take up too much of his precious time. He carried his bouquet back to his office to work. Meanwhile, in the bookstore, Elisa and Jasmine suggested a few ideas after looking at the contract Serenity drafted. After Serenity added their opinions, she sent the final version to Zachary to have York Corporation¡¯s legal advisors look at it. ¡°We need to have apany name, at least.¡± Serenity sent the document to her husband and said to her two business partners, ¡°I¡¯m bad at naming. You two will have to rack your brains a little more for ourpany name.¡± She nned to push that responsibility away. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°The main focus of our business is fruits and vegetables. Let¡¯s call it an agriculturalpany. What should we name it? Since it¡¯s our partnership, shall we call it Sisters Agricultural Company?¡± Jasmine suggested. Serenity and Elisa both thought that name was a little old¨Cfashioned. Serenity looked toward Elisa, ¡°Elisa, you think of one too. You¡¯re our leader.¡¯¡± ¡°I haven¡¯t thought of one.¡± Jasmine thought thepany name had to be impressive as it was the firstpany she was investing in. She could not think of a lovelypany name instantly. A bodyguard walked in and interrupted the three women¡¯s chat. ¡°Missus, the Browns are here.¡± Serenity looked toward her nephew, who was sitting at the side and ying Lego. She thought the Browns came for Sonny. She said indifferently, ¡°Let them in.¡± She would not stop the Browns from meeting Sonny. When her sister divorced Hank, they had agreed that the Browns were allowed to visit Sonny whenever they wanted. However, Serenity would not agree to the Browns taking Sonny on an outing again. The incident in the zoo was terrifying. She would no longer take Sonny to popr and crowded tourist zones or join in on any fun. Chapter 1198 Chapter 1198 Chapter 1198 Lucas¡¯s kidnapping was a good example. Chelsea was immersed in watching the scene at that time. She did not pay attention to her son, which caused Lucas to be kidnapped. When she realized it, Lucas had already been carried far away. All the Browns were here¨CHank and Chelsea with their parents. Jessica was not on good terms with Chelsea and she did not like Lucas. She could not be bothered to appear insincere, so she was not with them. Truth be told, Jessica was feeling guilty¨Cshe was afraid of facing Liberty and Serenity. She was also scared of them noticing her guilt and suspecting her. ¡°Come here, Sonny. Let Aunt Elisa carry you.¡± Elisa waved her hand at Sonny. He had always liked his pretty Aunt Elisa. He packed the toys he had not finished assembling immediately and walked toward her. She lifted him after he extended his hands. ¡°You haven¡¯t finished assembling them?¡± Elisa asked softly. The child shook his head. He said, ¡°Dunc is busy. I can do it if Dunc teaches me.¡± Mom could not help him either. Elisa smiled and said, ¡°I yed Lego a lot when I was young. I can teach you.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Sonny said in a childish tone. While Elisa was teaching Sonny to assemble the Lego blocks, the Browns were led inside. by the bodyguards. Seeing there were bodyguards guarding even Serenity¡¯s bookstore, the Browns truly felt the change in her status. They disdained her in the past, but she had be someone whom they could not y up 1. to. ¡°Serenity.¡± Chelsea took the lead. She was here to thank Serenity, after all. Serenity had rescued her son. Original from N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Serenity, are we disturbing you?¡± Chelsea was smiling. Serenity had not seen that bright and kind smile of hers for almost ten years. When Serenity and her sister met the Brown family for the first time, Chelsea was smiling with kindness just like that. ¡°Do you have any business here?¡± Serenity guessed their intentions when she saw the bags, big and small, in their hands. Chelsea ced the things she bought on the cashier with a smile. She said, ¡°We¡¯re just here to thank you. We¡¯re truly grateful to you. My Lucas would¡¯ve been gone if it weren¡¯t for you.¡± It would be difficult to find a kidnapped child back. Chelsea did not dare imagine the consequences of losing her youngest son. She was truly grateful to Serenity. After she had hurt Liberty and all the awful things she had done, Serenity could still return evil with kindness and rescue Lucas. Chelsea felt guilty for all the things she had done in the past. She and her mother had yed a big part in Hank and Liberty¡¯s divorce. Seeing the continuous improvements in Liberty and Serenity¡¯s life, Chelsea felt utter remorse, and this feeling could only deepen. Chelsea¡¯s dislike for Jessica, her brother¡¯s wife, grew too. On that day, her entire family apanied her to thank Serenity and ease their rtionship with Serenity and Liberty. However, Jessica said directly that she would not Chelsea was not a generous person. She did not change her personality just because Serenity saved her son. She simply felt gratitude toward Serenity and her sister. On the way there, she kept thinking that Jessica should not even think about living a good life with her family as long as she was around. Chapter 1199 Chapter 1199 Chapter 1199 ¡°That¡¯s right, Serenity. Thank you so much for yesterday. If it weren¡¯t for you, Lucas and Sonny might¡¯ve¡­ I won¡¯t continue living if something happens to the two children.¡± Mrs. Brown felt thankful toward Serenity too. Serenity said, ¡°Mrs. Brown, Chelsea, you thanked me yesterday. Sonny is my nephew. I¡¯ll surely protect him well.¡± No matter how naughty Lucas was, she could not stand by and leave him either. In that situation, anyone who had the ability would not choose to abandon them. ¡°We should be thanking you. Do you have time, Serenity? We want to treat you to a meal,¡± Chelsea asked with a smile. ¡°Invite your sister too. I¡¯ll treat you two to a meal. By the way, you have two bodyguards. Are they outside? I want to thank them personally too.¡± ¡°Chelsea, you can treat them instead of us. Milo, Harry,e in for a second.¡± Serenity had but only ordered the bodyguards to save the children. The ones who actually saved Lucas were them. It was only right that the Browns thanked them personally. The bodyguards came in after hearing Serenity calling them. ¡°Missus,¡± they greeted Serenity respectfully. She said, ¡°Chelsea and her family are here to thank you two for rescuing Lucas yesterday. She bought all these things as a token of gratitude. Both of you can ept them.¡± Serenity did not want to ept the gifts from the Browns but she did not want to miss the opportunity of making them use their money either. Since the ones who saved Lucas were the two bodyguards, the gifts would go to them. ¡°You two are our saviors. Thank you so much for yesterday.¡± The Browns were eternally grateful to the bodyguards. They gave half of the gifts to them. and left the other half for Serenity. Chelsea even took out several envelopes of money to be given to Serenity and the two bodyguards. Serenity declined, but she allowed Milo and Harry to ept Chelsea¡¯s envelopes. Original from N?velDrama.Org. After staying for some time, the Browns decided not to disturb Serenity anymore. However, they bumped into Old Mr. Hunt, who hade from the Hunts¡® hometown, at the bookstore¡¯s entrance. Old Mr. Hunt had two of his sons and two grandchildren with him. The five of them spanned three generations. They came over in John¡¯s luxury car. They undoubtedly came for the assets Scott and his wife had left behind. When Serenity and Liberty returned to their hometown, they brought so many people with them that the entire neighborhood knew about it. No, the whole town was aware. Serenity and Liberty stated that they would file awsuit. After understanding thew through his grandchildren, Old Mr. Hunt knew that he and his wife would not get much of the assets. He got anxious. The properties Scott and his wife left behind did not worth much, but they were huge. Housingnds in farming areas could be inherited by children and grandchildren. As such, the housingnds were worth a lot of money. It was also mainly because Old Mr. Hunt was unconvinced. He thought that his son and daughter¨Cinw were already dead, and they only left behind two daughters. A married daughter was like sshed water¨Chow could they return to fight for their family¡¯s inheritance? The housingnds and farnds should have been inherited by Old Mr. Hunt and his wife. They could give thend to whomever they wanted. Old Mr. Hunt did not understand anything about thews of descent and distribution. He only learned that he and his wife would not get much inheritance if they were to fight awsuit. After discussing it with his wife, children, and grandchildren, he started making a fuss about Scott¡¯s background. Scott was dead anyway, and there was no proof. He would not feel sad even if Old Mr. Hunt said he was not a true child of the Hunt family. Old Mr. Hunt hoped that Serenity and Liberty would give up on filing and fighting awsuit. It would take a lot of time, and money was required to hirewyers as well. He thought it was too troublesome. Chapter 1200 Chapter 1200 Chapter 1200 Old Mr. Hunt had spread rumors that Scott was not their biological son in their hometown. When he felt like he had made up enough rumors, he came looking for Serenity eagerly the next day. ¡°What are you guys doing here?¡± Mrs. Brown looked like she saw an enemy when she spotted Old Mr. Hunt. She still remembered that he had collected tens of thousands of dors from her but did not do his job. She went to get her money back, but he refused to own up. It infuriated her a lot. Upon seeing Old Mr. Hunt bringing his son and grandchildren with him, Mrs. Brown red at him with a cold face. ¡°You¡¯re trying to ruin Serenity¡¯s reputation again, right? You old fart.¡± Mrs. Brown had heard about the Hunts causingmotion before. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. She told her husband in private before that the Hunts were utterly brazen. They took away. a considerable portion of the insurance payout over ten years ago and even chased Liberty and Serenity out, which resulted in them not being able to return home. They did not raise the sisters for even a day, yet they were hogging the assets the girls¡® parents left behind for them. After discovering that Serenity had be the Yorks¡® missus, they thought of getting Serenity to give them a huge amount of money to be used when they were older. They were utterly brazen. ¡°Why are you guys here again? Your son and Liberty have divorced. Why have youe over and look for Serenity from time to time? Are you trying to take advantage of her?¡± Old Mr. Hunt and his family also had a bad impression of the Browns. They knew that the Browns would often bother Liberty even after she and Hank had gotten. a divorce. They thought the Browns simply felt remorse after seeing the sisters find their rich aunt and Serenity marrying into a wealthy family. The Browns wanted to reconcile with Liberty. By doing so, they could get the York family¡¯s help. Those with thest name Hunt were rted to Serenity and Liberty, but they had not even gotten any benefits. How could the Browns cut in line? ¡°I wonder who¡¯s the thick¨Cskinned, shameless person bringing his children and grandchildren around shamefully to take advantage of others and gain benefits.¡± ¡°You¡¯re the shameless, brazen one, you old b*tch.¡± Old Mr. Hunt was not to be outdone in scolding someone. ¡°Who are you calling a b*tch?¡± Chelsea was fluent in quarreling too. When she heard Old Mr. Hunt calling her mother an old b*tch, she pointed at him and scolded him without restraint. How could Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s children and grandchildren allow Chelsea to point at and scold him? They refused to be inferior and scolded her back. A quarrel between two people had escted into a fight between two families. Serenity did not stop them. She let the two families go head to head. She and her two best friends simply watched; they were pretty absorbed in the drama before them. On the other hand, Sonny had his ears covered by Elisa. His head was pressed toward her body too. She did not allow him to see or listen to prevent his innocent soul from being tainted. The Browns hade to thank Serenity. They also detested Old Mr. Hunt and the rest. Therefore, they took Serenity¡¯s side and helped her to criticize the three generations of Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s family badly. Although Old Mr. Hunt was good at quarreling, his opponents were, unfortunately, Chelsea and her mother. If no fists were involved, men hardly stood a chance to win whenever they fought against women. Their voices were not even as sharp as a woman¡¯s. Chelsea and her mother took turns going up to Old Mr. Hunt and his group. They scolded them until their faces were flushed red out of anger. ¡°I¡¯ve never seen such a heartless and cruel grandfather like you. It¡¯s pitiful enough that Liberty and her sister had lost their parents. Yet, you guys took arge portion of the insurance payout away and even monopolized the assets their parents had left behind. Your entire family¡¯s heart must be ck. You all will die miserable deaths.¡± Mrs. Brown pointed at Old Mr. Hunt as she berated him. Chapter 1201 Chapter 1201 Chapter 1201 ¡°See? The old woman in your family is facing retribution now. She¡¯s sick, right? You don¡¯t have to seek treatment for her. She¡¯ll die anyway even if she gets treated. She can meet her maker earlier and apologize to your son and daughter¨Cinw.¡± Mrs. Brown and Chelsea were sharp¨Ctongued. Their scolding had Old Mr. Hunt jump to beat. people up. Mr. Brown and Hank stepped forward and stopped him from moving. Old Mr. Hunt pointed his finger at Mrs. Brown and scolded, ¡°It¡¯s none of your business. Who do you think you are? It¡¯s none of your concern. You, a Brown, have nothing to do with. the Hunt family¡¯s matter. ¡°A married daughter is like sshed water. The sisters were the ones who shamelessly came back to fight for property. Do you divide and give any property to your daughter? You leave them all to your son as well. Look at you talking.¡± Chelsea said loudly, ¡°I got married to a capable husband. I have a house, a car, and savings. I gave up my inheritance to my younger brother. I was the one who gave it to him, do you understand? Serenity and Liberty never said anything about giving their parents¡® assets to you guys. You¡¯re just bullying them because they lost their parents. ¡°How could you still say you¡¯re family? The sisters are so unlucky to have a family member like you. You clearly said they neither need to support you while you¡¯re alive nor bury you when you die. However, you would get Serenity to run even the most minor errands and shamelessly ask for money after seeing her living a good life. ¡°Serenity, listen to me. Don¡¯t even give them a penny no matter how much money you have. You can live a good life with your sister and exasperate them. They¡¯ve been using money obtained through your parents¡® death. Just wait and watch karma do its job. ¡°The heavens are still looking at us from above. Listen, you old man. Whates around goes around. It¡¯s just a matter of time. No one will be there to help you when your punishmentes. ¡°Get lost, you shameless b*stards! Serenity, bring your store¡¯s brooms and mops out for me. I¡¯ll help you chase these shameless old b*stards away.¡± Serenity and Jasmine¡¯s actions were swift. One took a broom while the other took the mop. Chelsea and her mother immediately took the broom and mop. They then raised the broom and mop high and started hitting Old Mr. Hunt and the rest. They were not scaring them but actually beating them. The broom in Mrs. Brown¡¯s hand hit Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s face. continuously regardless of his old age. The York family¡¯s bodyguards enjoyed watching the fight. They appeared to not be doing anything, but they would actually help Chelsea and Mrs. Brown whenever there was a chance. With that, the mother and daughter gained the upper hand. They held the broom and mop high, chasing Old Mr. Hunt and his group far away. They only stopped to catch their breaths when they got tired from running. After some time, they returned with their makeshift weapons. ¡°Serenity, if they ever bully you or demand something from you using their seniority again, just give me a call. I¡¯lle over and help you to chase them all out!¡± Chelsea said viciously upon entering and returning the broom to Serenity.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity poured a ss of warm water for Chelsea and Mrs. Brown. ¡°Have some water, Chelsea, Mrs. Brown. Thank you for getting rid of them for me.¡± She was not afraid of the people from her family. However, having someone get angry on behalf of her and chase those evil people out made her happy and relieved. Extreme people had to be handled by other people of the same type. ¡°Their car hasn¡¯t left yet.¡± Chelsea said, ¡°Get me a knife, Serenity. I¡¯m going to puncture his car¡¯s tires.¡± Serenity was about tough. She had punctured all four tires of John¡¯s carst time and had someone tow it away. John drove it over again today. It seemed like he had not learned his lesson. ¡°Forget it. I¡¯ll get it myself. There¡¯s a knife in the kitchen, right?¡± Chelsea said as she we into the kitchen. Soon, she came out with a sharp knife looking aggressive. Chapter 1202 Chapter 1202 Chapter 1202 Chelsea walked outside and went to John¡¯s car. She aimed her knife and punctured all four tires. Once done, she brought the knife back into the store, washed it clean, and ced it back in its original position. Before she left, she even said to Serenity, ¡°I punctured his car tires. If he wants.pensation, tell them they can find me as much as they want. ¡°We won¡¯t be disturbing your business, Serenity. We¡¯ll be heading home now.¡± The Browns left very quickly. Elisa only released Sonny after silence returned to the bookstore. However, she realized he had fallen asleep in her embrace. She found it funny and said to Serenity, ¡°Sonny actually fell asleep.¡± Serenity carried her nephew, ced him on the small bed, and covered him with a nket. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I never had a good feeling about the Browns, but I feel like they finally did something good.¡± Elisa had watched the scene and was pleased with it. Jasmine said with a smile, ¡°This is called evil people being tamed by the same kind.¡± Serenity smiled too. ¡°My granddad tricked Sonny¡¯s grandmom for her money and she couldn¡¯t get it back. They¡¯ve been enemies since then. The fact that they met today proved that one cannot avoid their enemies in this small world.¡± She took her phone and called someone to tow John¡¯s car away. She hated that his car was stranded at her store¡¯s entrance and taking up space. It would affect her if she had to head out. ¡°Seren, they probably came today to tell you that your dad wasn¡¯t their biological child. They want you two to give up on fighting for the property. How¡¯s thewsuit preparation going? If everything¡¯s ready, you can sue them for upying your property by force.¡± ¡°I¡¯m waiting for a result.¡± Old Mr. Hunt even went as far as to say that Serenity¡¯s father was not his biological child to fight for the property. She would use the truth to shut them up. She could file awsuit after the DNA test results between Old Mr. Hunt and her were out. ¡°Besides saying that my dad wasn¡¯t their biological child, they might be here to negotiate with my sister and me. If negotiation is possible, I¡¯m willing to do it too. I won¡¯t have to waste time fighting awsuit.¡± Serenity had already guessed that her father¡¯s family would continue making a fuss. Of course, they knew that making a fuss was not the solution¨Conly a negotiation could solve the problem. When the DNA test results were out, it would shut their mouths that were spreading rumors and damper their confidence. Only then would they be able to sit down and have a negotiation. The sisters would not give up on anything rightfully theirs to inherit. ¡°What results?¡± Elisa asked out of curiosity. ¡°After you told me they were spreading rumors in my hometown saying that my dad wasn¡¯t their biological child, Zachary and I came up with a countermeasure. We used Noah to pluck several strands of my granddad¡¯s hair. I tested his DNA with mine. The results should be out in these two days.¡± Elisa smiled and said, ¡°Not bad. Silence them with evidence and truth.¡± Jasmine asked her friend, ¡°Serenity, if, I¡¯m saying IF your dad really wasn¡¯t their biological son, will you sisters still fight for the property?¡± ¡°Us inheriting our parents¡® property and whether my dad was their biological child are two different matters. Actually, the rumors they¡¯re spreading are utterly useless. They¡¯ll only be aughingstock to others.¡± It disappointed Serenity and Liberty as well as aggravated the conflict between the parties involved. Chapter 1203 Chapter 1203 Chapter 1203 A ringtone was heard. It was Serenity¡¯s phone. Her instincts told her that it was her husband¡¯s call. When she took her phone out, it was really Zachary who was calling. ¡°My husband¡¯s calling me,¡± Serenity told her two best friends. Jasmine was tactful and walked away to take a novel she had not finished from a bookshelf. Elisaughed and said, ¡°I should be going back too. If there are no problems with the contract, I¡¯ll have someone sign the contract with the mayor. Our project canmence afterward.¡± She took her bag as she spoke and left after speaking. Serenity smiled and proceeded to answer Zachary¡¯s call. ¡°Honey.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice was warm and alluring. He was captivating his wife with his voice on purpose. Serenity could not stand him doing it. She could not help shuddering. Sheughed and said, ¡°Just say what you want to, Zachary. You don¡¯t have to seduce me.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Why are youughing? I heard yourughter when you answered my call. Tell me what had happened that was so funny.¡± Zachary returned to his usual personality. His wife did not like his deliberate gentleness. She preferred him being natural. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Nothing. Aren¡¯t you busy?¡± ¡°I¡¯m getting off work in half an hour,¡± Zachary reminded his beloved wife. Time passed quickly. ¡°Oh, are youing over to eat? I recall you saying you had a lunch appointment and that you won¡¯t be able toe over before heading out this morning.¡± Zachary rubbed the spot between his brows. He felt tired after having been busy the entire morning. ¡°Seren, I want you to apany me to a meeting.¡± Serenity was stunned. She said hesitantly, ¡°I¨CI¡¯m not fully ready. I¡¯ll embarrass you if I make a mistake during the meeting.¡± ¡°You¡¯ve been learning from your aunt for some time. It¡¯s time to put it into practice. I¡¯lII teach you about socializing at a meeting. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m not afraid of embarrassment.¡± Zachary¡¯s tone was gentle as he coaxed Serenity into apanying him to the meeting. Serenity was not someonecking self¨Cconfidence. At first, she was a little timid because the businesses Zachary dealt with were big. Moreover, the people who could sit and eat with Zachary were all business tycoons. It was natural that a newbie investor like her would feel scared at the thought of eating with those big shots. However, she quickly threw those feelings behind her. Would nothing be fine if she spoke less, listened more, and looked around more instead? She would not affect her husband talking shop. In the meantime, she could also learn a thing or two from the experts. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll go over, but Sonny is asleep. My sister isn¡¯t here yet.¡± Jasmine immediately stuck her head out from the back of a bookshelf and said caringly,¡± Just go, Seren. I¡¯ll take care of Sonny for you. Liberty should be here soon.¡± Zachary thought about it for a second and said, ¡°You cane over after your sister reaches your ce. I arranged to meet my client at half past twelve in Wiltspoon Hotel¡¯s presidential suite on the top floor.¡± He could also rest in the presidential suite with his wife after ending the meeting and eating. It was true that Zachary wanted to let Serenity learn by his side. However, it was also undeniable that he wanted to enjoy the bliss of spending some time with her as husband and wife. ¡°Okay.¡± Jasmine could take care of Sonny, but Serenity was still worried. She wanted to wait until her sister arrived. ¡°Did the Brownse looking for you?¡± Chapter 1204 Chapter 1204 Chapter 1204 ¡°Mm. They came to thank me. My granddad brought my uncles and cousins over too. The two families quarreled. Chelsea and Mrs. Brown chased my granddad and the others out with the broom. The tires of John¡¯s car were punctured too. Chelsea did it.¡± Zacharyughed upon hearing that. ¡°The Brown family has finally done a satisfying thing.¡± Serenity giggled. ¡°My granddad and the others probably came to tell me that my dad wasn¡¯t their biological son. They want us to give up on inheriting the property. If we don¡¯t, they¡¯ll likely negotiate with us. Getting my parents¡® property back without fighting awsuit is the best¨Ccase scenario.¡± If Old Mr. Hunt really wanted to negotiate, Serenity would be willing to do it too. However, there was no way she would give up on her inheritance. ¡°Me and Granddad¡¯s DNA test results will be out within these two days. I¡¯ll see how they can continue making this up after I get the results.¡± ¡°It¡¯ll be ready by tomorrow. I¡¯ll go and get the results with you.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°Okay.¡± ¡°Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Serenity heard the bodyguards¡® respectful greeting, followed by her mother¨Cinw¡¯s voice. She turned toward the door in surprise and indeed saw Tania entering with a Herm¨¨s bag in hand. Zachary asked through the call, ¡°Honey, who called you? I thought the voice sounded like. my mom.¡± Serenity and Tania had not spent much time together. Zachary did not expect his mother to look for Serenity at the bookstore. ¡°It¡¯s your mom. Talk to youter, babe.¡± Serenity chose to end her call with Zachary right away. She hung up without giving him a chance to say goodbye and kept her phone. She stood up and walked around the cashier to greet her mother¨Cinw. She smiled and said, ¡°Mom, what brings you here?¡± ¡°Am I not wee?¡± Tania returned a question with a smile. ¡°No. I was just surprised. Please have a seat, Mom.¡± ????? Serenity invited Tania to take a seat, but Tania declined. She said, ¡°Seren, can you step away for a moment? Come and have a meal and go shopping with me.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Mom, can you give me a moment? My nephew fell asleep in my store, and my sister isn¡¯t here yet. I can only leave after my sisteres.¡± ¡°We can wait. Sonny¡¯s safety is more important¡± Tania did notment on her daughter¨Cinw taking care of her sister¡¯s son so often. She adored Sonny too. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Zachary had already contacted the coach who used to teach him and his brothers martial arts. The coach was quite old, so he rmended his son go over to teach Sonny instead. Tania sat down. Jasmine stopped reading her novel. After going over to greet Tania, she went to pour a ss of water for her. Tania was Serenity¡¯s mother¨Cinw, but they had not interacted much. Serenity was not as rxed with her mother¨Cinw as she was with Nana. She was not sure whether her mother -inw was really here to invite her to go shopping or if she had other intentions. ¡°Seren, Ms. Sox, please sit.¡± Tania saw them standing at the side, staring at her. She said, ¡°Don¡¯t have to be so cautious around me.¡± Serenity and Jasmine exchanged nces. Serenity sat back behind the cashier. When she saw her mother¨Cinw¡¯s well¨Cmaintained face, she recalled that her mother¨Cinw had never put her in a difficult spot or hurt her during their few interactions. Although she was feeling flustered, she believed that it was not a bad thing. Maybe her mother¨Cinw simply wanted to find someone to go shopping with her. ¡°Mom, I¡¯ll call Zachary first to tell him that I¡¯m not going to the meeting with him.¡± Tania asked her, ¡°Did Zack ask you to go to one with him?¡± Chapter 1205 Chapter 1205 Chapter 1205 ¡°Mm, he said there¡¯s a lunch appointment in the afternoon.¡± Tania said nonchntly, ¡°Tell him you won¡¯t be going then. We haven¡¯t eaten outside or gone shopping together before. Zack won¡¯t fight me on this.¡± People have been spreading rumors that she had had a bad rtionship with Serenity. They said Serenity had always attended banquets with Mrs. Stone but was rarely seen returning to the manor to apany her mother¨Cinw; neither had they eaten together in public or gone shopping. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Tania wanted to ignore the rumors. She was aware of the status of her rtionship with Serenity. However, she was asked about it by her friends whenever she went to y cards with them. She felt annoyed. Tania gave up on ying cards and looked for her daughter¨Cinw immediately. She wanted to take her daughter¨Cinw and splurge at luxury brand boutiques. She would dispel the rumors with concrete actions. That was the reason for Tania¡¯s sudden visit. ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity was about to call Zachary when he called her. She picked up his call in front of her mother¨Cinw. ¡°Honey, why did my mome looking for you?¡± Zachary was not worried that his mother would bully Serenity. His mother used to think Serenity was not good enough for him. She was secretly unhappy. but never said harsh words in front of Serenity or made things difficult for his wife. When other people were saying Serenity was nosy and calling his mother about it, his mother¡¯s elegant manners as Mrs. York was lost. She scolded them to protect Serenity and demonstrated the York family¡¯s protectiveness. Serenity and his mother would not get into a conflict, but Zachary still wanted to know why his mother suddenly went to Serenity¡¯s bookstore. ¡°Mom wants to¡­ I¡¯ll let Mom talk to you.¡± Serenity passed the phone to her mother¨Cinw with a smile. ¡°Mom, you can tell Zachary.¡± Tania took the phone and talked to her son over the phone. ¡°Zack, you don¡¯t have to pick Serenity up anymore. I¡¯m borrowing your wife from you for half a day.¡± Zachary said, ¡°Mom, what are you doing?¡± ¡°Nothing. I just wanted to have a meal with Serenity and go shopping with her. I think I¡¯ve never bought her a gift before. I¡¯ll go shopping with her and buy something she likes.¡± Zachary could at least guess his mother¡¯s intentions. ¡°Did those chatty people talk nonsense in front of you again?¡± Tania did not answer him, but her silence meant tacit agreement. Zachary frowned. Those women really loved to gossip. They did not dare call his mom anymore, but they still made the rumors reach her ears. To tackle those rumors, the best idea was for Serenity and Tania to appear together to show that they had a good rtionship. Zachary was unhappy that his wife, who was initially apanying him to his lunch engagement, was snatched away by his mother. However, he could not fight against his mother for his wife. ¡°You can borrow my wife if you want to. Just remember to return her to me at night.¡± The possessive Mr. York had no choice but to hand over his wife. Tania smiled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I know. I won¡¯t monopolize Seren.¡± Serenity was speechless. Tania handed the phone back to Serenity. Serenity could not be lovey¨Cdovey with Zachary in front of her mother¨Cinw. She heard most mothers¨Cinw could not stand their daughter -inw being affectionate with their son. It would give them the impression that the son they had painstakingly raised was stolen. Serenity¡¯s interactions with Zachary were proper when they were with her mother¨Cinw. Chapter 1206 Chapter 1206 Chapter 1206 Serenity hung up the phone after saying a few words to Zachary. Not two minutester, she received a notification that money was transferred to her bank. ount. Zachary changed the phone number bound to the household bank card to hers. He was worried she would feel ufortable if he received a notification every time she spent. money. He told her to let her use the money at will, but¡­ Zachary was very considerate with regard to that. After the phone number linked to the ount was changed to Serenity¡¯s, she became much more comfortable when spending money. Zachary transferred a sum of money to the ount and told Serenity to spend as much as she wanted while shopping with her mother¨Cinw. Liberty arrived a few minutester. Only when her nephew was handed over to her sister did Serenity apany her mother¨Cin w to lunch. Then, the mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw spent time together until the evening. Tania was the wife of the current head of the York family. The stores she frequented were shops that people without status could not visit. Naturally, they met many other affluentdies. Tania took Serenity to those luxury stores on a shopping spree. They held arms intimately as they went in and out of the stores, and their bodyguards were in charge of carrying all the bags. They were very eye¨Ccatching as they strolled the streets. asionally, Serenity would buy some snacks she liked to eat. Tania also indulgently bought the snacks and apanied Serenity. The mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw smashed the rumors of their disharmony with. practical actions. The next day, photos of them shopping together were published by the entertainment news. Audrey looked at the news and said to her husband, ¡°Our daughter has a good eye. It¡¯s a shame that Zachary and she weren¡¯t meant to be. ¡°If Mrs. York didn¡¯t care about her daughter¨Cinw, she wouldn¡¯t personally take actions to refute the rumors. She may not be exceptionally pleased with Serenity as her daughter¨Cin-w, but it¡¯s true that she still protects Serenity.¡± Audrey felt both admiration and regret. She would die in peace if her daughter could marry into the York family. Unfortunately, Zachary did not like Elisa. Darrell said, ¡°Of course our daughter has a good eye, but don¡¯t bring up the matter of her and Zachary again. Zachary is your nephew¨Cinw now. It¡¯s not good for you to keepContent held by N?velDrama.Org. mentioning him as Elisa¡¯s former love.¡± ¡°I only talk about it in front of you. I won¡¯t bring it up when Zachary¡¯s around.¡± Audrey naturally knew that it was not good. She just could not help but sigh when she saw how Tania protected Serenity. As an aunt, she was d that the York family treated Serenity well. Fortunately, a good man like Zachary was not stolen away by an outsider and fell into her niece¡¯sp instead. ¡°I wonder about Elisa¡¯s marriage.¡± Darrellforted his wife. ¡°Our daughter is a great girl. She¡¯ll surely meet an excellent man who loves only her. Zachary is not the only good man in this world. No matter how exceptional Zachary is, Elisa and he won¡¯t have a good ending if he doesn¡¯t love her. It doesn¡¯t matter even if Serenity didn¡¯t exist. There¡¯s no point in forcing people who weren¡¯t meant to be. ¡°Let¡¯s worry more about Anthony¡¯s marriage. He¡¯s older than Elisa.¡± Audrey felt a headache at the mention of her second son. He was never at home, so she did not even have the chance to nag him. Every time she called him, he always said he was busy and hung up without waiting for her to say anything. She was infuriated with him. ¡°I understand now why Old Mrs. York is so frantic looking for partners for her grandsons even at her age.¡± Darrell was speechless. One of their sons also did not have a partner yet. Chapter 1207 Chapter 1207 Chapter 1207 Meanwhile, when Serenity saw the entertainment news article, she was silent for a long time before saying to her friend, ¡°Now that my status is different, every little thing can make it to the entertainment section of the news.¡± It was her first time making the news after bing the missus of the York family. Jasmine was used to seeing gossip like that andughed. ¡°Your husband is the biggest name in Wiltspoon¡¯s business world. You barely interact with your mother¨Cinw, and you¡¯ve recently attended various parties with your aunt, so it¡¯s natural they started to misunderstand. ¡°Ady called your mother¨Cinw before to say that you were meddlesome, and she told your mother¨C inw to discipline you. You heard about that, right? Those people just wanted to see your mother¨Cin¨C law treating you badly because they were jealous you were able to marry into a top¨Css family like the Yorks. ¡°I heard from Josh that Grandma May and your mother¨Cinw have the most say in the York family. Their words arew in the manor. ¡°I have nothing to say about how well Grandma May treats you. I think she dotes on you. more than she does her own grandsons. Besides, she was the one who introduced Zachary to you, and she told Zachary to marry you as a way for him to repay her. ¡°She pulled you into the York family circle, so it¡¯s natural for her to protect you. It¡¯s useless for people to try and provoke your rtionship. Grandma May is the most shrewd olddy I¡¯ve ever met. She always arranges everything jokingly, but her ns always work out well in the end.¡± Now that Jasmine was dating Josh, she was the first to know about all sorts of gossip. She knew more gossip about Serenity than thetter did about herself. Serenity was not a gossiper. Most of the gossip she knew that went around Wiltspoon, she heard from Jasmine. Jasmine analyzed the situation and continued to say, ¡°Since Grandma May is out of the question, others aim at your mother¨Cinw instead. They want to torture you through your mother¨Cinw so as to destroy Zachary and your happiness. ¡°Mothers¨Cinw and daughters¨Cinw not getting along is an age¨Cold tale. Mothers¨Cinw in the past often bullied their daughters¨Cinw, and nowadays thetter usually don¡¯t like. living together with their inws, so it¡¯s easy for conflicts to happen. ¡°If you don¡¯t live together, then there¡¯s a distance, and that distance will help the mother¨Cin-w and daughter¨Cinw live in peace. The man they both love won¡¯t have to be caught in the middle. ¡°It just so happens that you and your husband don¡¯t live with your inws, so you don¡¯t meet his mother as often. Because of that, other people guessed that you were on bad terms with your mother¨Cinw, and they tried to use her to torture you. That¡¯s why there are many rumors saying that you two have a bad rtionship. ¡°When those rumors reached your mother¨Cinw¡¯s ears, she couldn¡¯t stand it so she took you with her to dispel the rumors. Your mother¨Cinw is very kind to you, Seren. You might not be her ideal daughter¨Cinw, but she still protects you. She can¡¯t stand listening to rumors of you two not getting along.¡± Serenity was very grateful to Tania after hearing that thetter was protecting her. Her mother¨Cinw never made things hard for her before. When she fought with Zachary, her mother¨Cinw¡¯s heart ached for Zachary, but she did not cause trouble for Serenity or even badmouth her. Serenity felt that it was rare to have a mother¨Cinw as good as Tania. She said, ¡°In the end, other people only had the opportunity to spread rumors because I don¡¯t spend enough time with my mother¨Cinw. I should spend more time with her in the future. If we interact more often, there won¡¯t be a chance for others to spread rumors about us. ¡°My inws get along so well that they¡¯re basically attached at the hip. Even I was afraid of being the third wheel. When we shopped yesterday, my father¨Cinw called almost every twenty minutes to urge her to go home. ¡°My father-inw alsoined on the phone that she was throwing away her man for her daughter¨Cinw. He bemoaned how she went out without telling him or bringing him along, saying that he could¡¯ve helped to carry our stuff for us. She had to spend quite some time to coax him before we could continue shopping.¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine listened with envy, and sheughed, ¡°I hope Josh and I can be like your inws. after decades of marriage. They get along so well it¡¯s like they¡¯re still dating.¡± Serenity also envied her parents¨Cinw¡¯s rtionship. She said, ¡°Zachary dotes on me, but that¡¯s the same for all the men in his family. His uncles also dote on their wives. They¡¯re a good family, so the men were raised well.¡± Therefore, even if she wanted to spend more time with her mother¨Cinw, she had to consider her father¨Cinw¡¯s feelings. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Chapter 1208 Chapter 1208 Chapter 1208 Serenity¡¯s phone rang. It was a call from Zachary. She looked at the screen andughed. ¡°Speak of the devil.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Be happy about it. Mr. York is so busy, but he still calls you every once in a while. It¡¯s clear that he really dotes on you. Of course, my Josh isn¡¯t bad to me either. Oh, he¡¯s not mine yet. He hasn¡¯t proposed to me yet.¡± Serenity answered the call. ¡°Honey, I¡¯m on my way. I¡¯ll reach in ten minutes¡± ¡°You¡¯reing here?¡± Serenity was a little surprised because she did not know why Zachary was suddenlying over. However, she soon figured it out. He said that he would apany her to get the results of the DNA test. She looked at the clock. It was half past two. He should be at work at this time. He pushed away a lot of his work to apany her. In his heart, anything that was rted to her was his number one priority. The taste of being pampered so much was sweeter than sugar. ¡°I¡¯ll just get the results by myself. You¡¯re busy at work.¡± Zachary said, ¡°It¡¯s fine. It won¡¯t take that long anyway.¡± ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll wait for you.¡± ¡°Great.¡± Serenity made a kissy sound, making Zachary chuckle. ¡°Honey, I want you to kiss me, not your phone.¡± Serenityughed and hung up the call. She said to friend, ¡°My man isn¡¯t as easy to coax as yours.¡± She learned that trick from Jasmine. It was very useful at first, and Zachary was ted when she used it on him. However, it was not useful now¨Che wanted a real kiss. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Jasmine grinned. ¡°It¡¯s because Mr. York has experienced something sweeter before. Of course he¡¯d want something more.¡± Serenity¡¯s face flushed red. ¡°When will you and Mr. Bucham be inviting us to your wedding?¡± Serenity changed the topic. ¡°I¡¯m still waiting for your wedding invitation.¡± Her wedding with Zachary was set to be after fall¨Cstill a long way from now. Jasmine¡¯s expression was somewhat blissful. ¡°He hasn¡¯t proposed to me yet. I¡¯ll agree to marry him whenever he proposes. Don¡¯t worry, you can¡¯t run away from my wedding banquet.¡± Josh was already nning on how he was going to propose. Chapter 1209 Chapter 1209 Chapter 1209 Ten minutester, Serenity heard the sound of a car honking and spoke to her friend before taking her phone that was left on the table. She went around the counter and left. After a few steps, she turned back and picked up her bag. ¡°I forgot to take the bag that Zachary gave me. He¡¯ll pull a long face if I don¡¯t go out with it.¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°What a blissful worry.¡± Serenity held the branded bag Zachary gave her and walked out of the bookstore. The two bodyguards saw that it was Zachary who came to pick her up and very sensibly did not follow her again. Zachary got out of the car, holding a bouquet in one hand and opening the car door for her with the other. He passed the bouquet to Serenity when she approached. ¡°This is for you, honey.¡± ¡°Thanks, babe.¡± Serenity took the bouquet, smiled and kissed Zachary¡¯s face, and got into the car. Zachary touched the ce she kissed with a smile in his eyes, then followed her into the car. ¡°Honey, I brought you some pastries for afternoon tea.¡± Zachary got into the car and handed two boxes of pastries to Serenity. Serenity smiled and took the boxes,plimenting him, ¡°You¡¯re getting more and more. considerate, babe.¡± She leaned over and left a peck on his cheek again, whispering in his ear, ¡°Love you.¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary held her shoulder and whispered back into her ear, ¡°I love you too.¡± Jim, who was sitting in the passenger seat, thought, ¡®Mr. Zachary, please spare a bachelor like me.¡® Jim and his colleagues also wanted to fall in love after watching Zachary and Serenity show off their affection every day. Serenity ced the bouquet at her side and took a box of pastries while asking, ¡°Do your want to eat together?¡± ¡°You go ahead. I¡¯ve never liked sweets, but I¡¯ll eat them if you make them personally.¡± Serenity did not force him since she knew that he did not have a sweet tooth. She ate with relish under his doting eyes. ¡°Do you know which hotel my granddad and the others are staying in? I¡¯ll go straight to them after getting the results. I¡¯ll be making the first move this time.¡± Serenity wanted to settle the issue of the house as soon as possible. ¡°Yeah, I had someone keep an eye on them. They¡¯re staying in a budget hotel. I¡¯IL apany you to see them after we get the results.¡± John was furious after his car tires were shed by Chelsea, and his car was towed away again. He yelled that he wanted to settle the score and impensation from Chelsea. He was getting his tires changed today, so he did not have a car to use for now. Old Mr. Hunt and the others stayed in the budget hotel and watched TV in boredom. ¡°Seren, if the DNA test results show that your dad really isn¡¯t their biological child¡­¡± Serenity said firmly, ¡°That¡¯s impossible. My dad is definitely their biological child. He takes after my granddad the most.¡± Zachary had never seen his father¨Cinw before, not even his pictures, so he did not know how much his father¨Cinw resembled Old Mr. Hunt. In any case, they would soon get the results of the DNA test and find out whether or not Scott was Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s biological son. When they arrived at the center, Zachary apanied Serenity to get the results. After reading the report, Serenity took out her cell phone and took a picture of the report to send to her sister. Chapter 1210 Chapter 1210 Chapter 1210 ¡°What does it say?¡± Zachary had not seen the results yet. He watched her actions but could not see a smile on her face, so he assumed his father¨Cinw really was not the biological son of Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°The results say that my granddad and I are rted by blood. My dad is their biological child.¡± ¡°They¡¯re actually rted by blood? With how badly they treat you, I always thought you weren¡¯t biologically rted.¡± Serenity looked at her husband and seemed amused. ¡°You sound like you were hoping my dad wasn¡¯t their biological child.¡± Zachary said sheepishly, ¡°They¡¯re so ruthless that I thought your dad wasn¡¯t their own. How can they do this when he¡¯s their actual son? It¡¯s heartbreaking.¡± ¡°My sister and I had our hearts broken by them long ago. We¡¯ll never reconcile in our lifetime.¡± Serenity put the results away. She had not received a reply from her sister yet, so she guessed that Liberty should be sleeping. The business at All You Can Eat was booming, and Liberty was turning a profit, but it was tiring. She had to get up early since she was running a breakfast diner, so she would catch up on her sleep with Sonny in the afternoon. They would sleep until the evening and get up to eat a simple dinner, then Liberty had to start preparing and shopping for ingredients for the next day. Some of the dishes had a long prep time, so Serenity would go over and help her sister when she had the time. If they prepared the food the previous night and kept it fresh in the refrigerator, it would save a lot of work the next day. Zachary knew which budget hotel Old Mr. Hunt and the others were staying in. He apanied Serenity and went there straight with his group of bodyguards. John was not in the hotel, but Old Mr. Hunt and his two sons, as well as his eldest grandson, Mike, were there. The four of them sat on the bed ying cards, When they heard a knock on the door, Mike. went to open the door while still holding onto his cards. ¡°Who is it?¡± ¡°It¡¯s me, Serenity.¡± The Hunt family were surprised to hear Serenity¡¯s voice. Mike opened the door and saw Serenity standing outside. Beside her was Zachary, and a group of bodyguards brought up the rear. The bodyguards were all tall and sturdy. Their eyes stared coldly at Mike, making him feel slightly intimidated. He stammered and asked Serenity, ¡°What do you want? W¨CWait. W¨CWhy are you here?¡± ¡°Are you ying cards?¡± Serenity nced inside. ¡°I want to negotiate with you. It¡¯s the same reason you all came here.¡± At Serenity¡¯s words, Old Mr. Hunt mmed his cards on the bed and jumped. He put on his shoes and shouted, ¡°Negotiate? What¡¯s there to negotiate? Serenity, yourst name isn¡¯t Hunt. Your dad isn¡¯t my biological son. We adopted him and raised him into an adult, but he left without even repaying us. The house he left behind will be taken as his gratitude to us.¡± Old Mr. Hunt put on his shoes and strode over to Serenity, wanting to scold her. However, when he saw Zachary standing beside her with a frosty expression, he did not dare point his finger at Serenity. The most exceptional man in Wiltspoon was his grandson¨Cinw, but he did not enjoy the blessings that came with being Zachary¡¯s grandfather¨Cinw. Instead, along with his sons. and grandsons, he suffered heavy losses because of Zachary. ¡°Your father isn¡¯t my son, Serenity! You¡¯re not my grandchild either. We¡¯re not rted by blood, yet you still have the nerve to fight for property with an old man like me. I¡¯m telling you, I won¡¯t negotiate. I won¡¯t move out of the house even if I lose thewsuit.¡± After his grandsons told him about thew, he also learned that going to court would be bad for him. That was why he tried to say that his son was not his biological child. Serenity did not rush to refute him or take out the report. She asked calmly, ¡°Did Noah pull out a few strands of your hair a few days ago?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know what was up with that brat. He said I had a lot of white hair and wanted to pluck some of them out. I gave him a tight p.¡± After Old Mr. Huntined about Noah, he suddenly realized something. ¡°How did you know that?¡± Chapter 1211 Chapter 1211 Chapter 1211 Serenity said, ¡°Because I was the one who told him to pluck your hair.¡± Why do you ¡°You told him to do it? Are you mad? want to pluck my hair? How could that runt obey your orders? Serenity, did you give Noah a lot of benefits?¡± She gave his youngest grandson benefits but not to her own grandfather. Sure enough, there was no point in raising a girl. She did not know how to take care of her grandfather after getting rich. Original from N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I heard you spread rumors saying my dad wasn¡¯t your biological child. My dad died more than ten years ago, so he can¡¯t refute the usations. As his daughter, I have to refute it for him. ¡°ording to inheritancew, mom and you can inherit a part of Dad¡¯s assets. The results will be the same whether we go to court or negotiate. You wouldn¡¯t have gotten into to court or negotiate. You wouldn¡¯t have gotten into this situation if you weren¡¯t this greedy.¡± Serenity took out the DNA test result. ¡°I told Noah to pluck your hair to do a DNA test. Dad can¡¯t get a DNA test done with you, but it¡¯ll be the same if I do it instead. I just came from obtaining the results today. ¡°The results show that we¡¯re rted by blood. You might not know what that means, but your grandsons will. Go ahead and ask your grandsons to exin it to you.¡± The Hunt family was speechless. ¡°Do you still want to insist that my dad isn¡¯t your biological child? My parents treated you and Grandmom so well when they were alive. Are your hearts made of stone? How could you say that my dad isn¡¯t your son just because you want to give my house to your second grandson? ¡°To be honest, I hoped my dad wasn¡¯t your biological son. That way, I might be able to understand. The way you¡¯re so heartless and ruthless to my sister and me is as if you¡¯re not our grandparents. Old Mr. Hunt looked at the report, then at Serenity, and turned his head to look at his children and grandchild. For a moment, he did not know what to say. He knew very well whether or not Scott was his flesh and blood. However, they thought they could say whatever they wanted since Scott passed away more than a decade ago. Scott could note back and refute their words anyway. ¡°Mike, what¡¯s a DNA test?¡± Old Mr. Hunt was tongue¨Ctied for a while before asking Mike. Mike looked a little ashen. When his grandparents started spreading those rumors, he already knew that it would not work. That was because a simple DNA test would prove the Chapte 1211 rumor wrong. His grandparents refused to listen. They said Serenity could not do anything as long as they refused to get a blood test done. Unexpectedly, Serenity used Noah to pluck Old Mr. Hunt¡¯s hair and had a DNA test done. Now that the results were out, what else could they say? ¡°Serenity, give me some time to talk with Granddad,¡± Mike spoke to Serenity, then closed the door and pulled his grandfather back into the room. Ten minutester, Mike opened the door again and said, ¡°Call your sister. Let¡¯s find a ce to sit down and talk about this. We¡¯ll settle this today.¡± They would stop causing trouble. They were the ones being unreasonable in this situation. Serenity had the York family as her backer now, so they could not fight back at all. Furthermore, Serenity was in the right. Chapter 1212 Chapter 1212 Chapter 1212 Mike persuaded his granddad toe to an agreement with Serenity and Liberty regarding the house. ¡°Okay,¡± Serenity agreed. If negotiation was on the table, she wanted it. She did not want to waste time on awsuit. An hourter, Zachary arranged a private room in Wiltspoon Hotel for the Hunt family to talk. Liberty brought Sonny with her. Old Mr. Hunt called John back too. He was fighting for Scott¡¯s house because he wanted John to inherit it. John had always been his favorite grandson, so he liked to discuss everything with John. After hearing that Serenity used their youngest cousin to get a DNA test done with Old Mr. Hunt in advance, John was cognizant that continuing their actions would only paint them. -¨¢s clowns. There was a mishap with Harriet¡¯s cosmetic surgery too. She was supposed to change her face to Serenity¡¯s, but she came out looking like their other cousin instead¡­ It would be hard to carry out the n of Harriet recing Serenity as the missus of the York family. The Hunt family was no match for the Yorks. Furthermore, there were many people in the York family. The young men of the York family were all giants among men. They had the highest status. in all of Wiltspoon. The Hunts were unreconciled and wanted to bully Serenity and her sister but only ended up humiliating themselves. The two sisters had powerful backers now. Even if they did not, with their temperament, they would still go to court in order to get the house back. From the beginning, the Hunt family was fighting a losing battle. ¡°Serenity and Liberty, you two have spread your roots in Wiltspoon and are living well now. You probably won¡¯t go back to the vige to live. Name a price. Sell the house your parents left behind to us.¡± Mike spoke first. ¡°If you don¡¯t want to sell it, then give some money to Grandmom and Granddad as per their share, and they¡¯ll give up the estate. The house will belong to you and your sister, but let our grandparents stay there until they pass. They¡¯ve lived there for many years and are used to the house.¡± Frankly, they just did not want to take in Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt to live in their own vis. Firstly, their wives did not get along with Old Mrs. Hunt and were prone to conflicts. Secondly, the two elders did not take care of their hygiene; the youngsters felt that Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt were dirty. They were also afraid that both of them would die in their vis and taint the property. In any case, Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt had always lived with Scott. After Scott and his wife died, they continued to stay in Scott¡¯s house, so just let them live in that house until they passed too. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Grandmom and Granddad didn¡¯t just give birth to my dad. When my parents were alive, it was always them taking our grandparents to the doctor whenever they felt unwell, and it was always my parents who took care of them. However, no matter how much they did, they still couldn¡¯tpare to you people who only pay lip service. ¡°You can¡¯t expect to toss the responsibility of caring for them in their old age to my dad too, right? My dad passed on and can¡¯t take care of them, but the insurance payout from his death went to Grandmom and Granddad. It¡¯s equivalent to paying back the money they used to raise him. ¡°My dad isn¡¯t around anymore, but you¡¯re all alive and well. Furthermore, you¡¯re doing well financially. Every family lives in a small self¨Cbuilt vi, and you all live good lives. Despite that, you don¡¯t want to take them in to live with you and want them to continue living in my house instead. Fine, we have no problems with that.¡± Serenity added, ¡°However, more than ten years ago, Grandmom and Granddad signed an agreement with Liberty and me. We won¡¯t support them while they¡¯re alive, and we won¡¯t have anything to do with them when they die either. If they¡¯re staying long¨Cterm in our house, shouldn¡¯t you bepensating us a little?¡± While she did not want to split hairs, they were still trying to bully her and her sister. Chapter 1213 Chapter 1213 Chapter 1213 The Hunt family was speechless. They exchanged nces, and then Mike said, ¡°Serenity, discuss it with your sister and name a price. Just sell the house to us.¡± ¡°If we offer to sell it, will it be you or our grandparents paying?¡± Mike said, ¡°Our grandparents are the ones staying in the house, so of course they¡¯ll be the ones paying. However, they don¡¯t have much savings after Grandmom got sick. All of us pitched in to pay for her medical fees. They may not be able to fork out arge amount of money at once. ¡°You can let them sign an IOU. They¡¯ll pay you as much money as they can now. If it¡¯s not enough¡­¡± ¡°Can they owe you the money?¡± Serenity could not help but ask, ¡°They¡¯re old and don¡¯t have a source of ie. How are they going to buy a house?¡± Mike was silent. Old Mr. Hunt heard his grandchildren¡¯s conversation and said to his two sons angrily, ¡°You brothers help me pay for the house. Scott¡¯s share can be considered paid for since your mom and I are staying in the house now.¡± Stuart and Christ echoed each other, ¡°Dad, we don¡¯t have a job and have no ie now. Our children are the ones supporting the family now. How can we afford to buy a house for you?¡± Old Mr. Hunt looked at his two grandsons. Mike said, ¡°Granddad wanted to give Uncle Scott¡¯s house to John. If we¡¯re buying it, then. John should pay for it. That way, we won¡¯t have any objections if John inherits the house.¡± John said, ¡°I have a house in town. I don¡¯t need another house. If Granddad has property, I want a stake in it. If he doesn¡¯t, then I won¡¯t pay. Granddad gave birth to my dad, but he didn¡¯t give birth to me. The responsibility of buying a house for Granddad for him to spend his retirement doesn¡¯t belong to me.¡± Original from N?velDrama.Org. Old Mr. Hunt was livid upon hearing what his most precious grandson had said. Liberty and Serenity knew that their rtives were shameless, but they were still appalled. John did not feel shameless and said, ¡°Why don¡¯t you chip in for letting our grandparents stay in the house too, Serenity? At most, you can ask them to pay you some rent. Houses in rural areas aren¡¯t expensive to rent. A house will cost three to four hundred dors a month. Our grandparents can afford that much. The others agreed with him. However, Old Mr. Hunt said, ¡°Your grandmom and I have to keep our money for retirement. You all should pay for the rent. Don¡¯t tell me you can¡¯t afford it. Both of you have families. too, can¡¯t you afford a rent of a couple of hundred dors a month?¡± He red at his two sons and scolded them, ¡°Your mom and I were able to raise all of you when you were young. Scott passed away young, but you two lived a good life. ¡°When Scott and his wife passed, your mom and I suffered so much scolding to get the insurance payout, and who did we give it to? We gave it to you so you could have the capital to start your own business. It¡¯s thanks to us that you were able to live such a good life. ¡°Can¡¯t you afford to support us in our old age now? Liberty, Serenity, you two will buy from us thend that was allotted to us. ¡°Your grandmom and I will continue to stay in the house, and the rent and electricity bills will be split equally among your three uncles. You just collect the rent from them. Ten years ago, we signed an agreement that you don¡¯t have to provide for us when we¡¯re alive, nor bury us when we¡¯re dead. We¡¯ll keep our word. You two don¡¯t have to care about us. I still have three sons and a bunch of grandchildren. I¡¯m not afraid there¡¯s no one to bury me when I die.¡± In fact, Old Mr. Hunt was a little hurt. He had many children and grandchildren who all lived good lives, but when it came to supporting him and his wife in their old age, they pushed the responsibility among each other, saying that they could not afford to support the two elderly. Back when they were poor, his wife and he were able to raise four sons and two daughters. However, none of their sons or grandchildren could support them in their old age. ¡°How much is the price for a square foot ofnd there?¡± Serenity asked. Chapter 1214 Chapter 1214 Chapter 1214 ¡°A few thousand per square foot.¡± Serenity looked at her two uncles and two cousins and asked them, ¡°Do you have any objections? If you don¡¯t, then we¡¯ll go with Granddad¡¯s idea. I¡¯ll get someone to help me write the contract, then we¡¯ll notarize the agreement. Granddad and Grandmom will have no share in the property my parents left behind in the future. ¡°They don¡¯t need to move out, but you have to pay for the rent and utilities every month. We won¡¯t take advantage of you, but don¡¯t even consider taking advantage of us either.¡± Zachary leaned into Serenity¡¯s ear and whispered, ¡°Transfer the ownership first. Although the name on the title deed is your dad¡¯s, your grandparents are still around. Your sister and you will only be able to inherit itpletely if they sign to give up their share of the inheritance.¡± If the title deed was transferred to the sisters¡® names, there would be no need to wrangle with those people in the future. Serenity nodded. The Hunt family had no objections. Mike said, ¡°All right, Serenity. You¡¯ll buy Grandmom and Granddad¡¯s share of thend. In the future, our grandparents will stay in your house while we pay for their rent and utility bills. However, we still have to go back and talk to Uncle David. Original from N?velDrama.Org. ¡°You two cane back tomorrow with the agreement and call the mayor to witness the signing.¡± ¡°Deal.¡± Liberty agreed easily. It was also good for the sisters to negotiate the settlement of their parents¡® inheritance without any more fussing. The Hunts were in a hurry to go home after the talk. When Old Mr. Hunt walked out of the hotel, he turned to look at the two Hunt sisters for a long time. His pursed mouth moved, but he did not say anything in the end. After they left, Liberty held her son¡¯s hand and said to her sister and brother¨Cinw, ¡°Seren and Zachary, I¡¯ll go back with Sonny now.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll send you back.¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°No need. I came here on my e¨Cbike.¡± ¡°Go get a car, Liberty, or I can give one to you.¡± ¡°No, I¡¯ll go look for a car when I¡¯m free in a couple of days. I have money to buy a car for myself. I won¡¯t be as busy during the weekend, so apany me then.¡± Liberty always refused her sister and brother¨Cinw¡¯s offer to give her a car or a house. She had money to buy a car. As for a house, she could not afford to buy one now, but her business was doing well. She would definitely earn enough to buy a house after working for several years. Liberty left Wiltspoon Hotel with Sonny on her e¨Cbike. Along the way, they met Duncan again. Liberty felt that Wiltspoon was too small. She bumped into Duncan wherever she went. Duncan noticed Liberty first and honked loudly at the mother and son. Liberty did not know it was him. When she heard someone honking at her, she nced back to see Duncan waving at her with a smile. When Liberty saw Duncan pulling over to the side, she stopped her bike. Duncan parked the car and walked up to the mother and son. He reached out to pat Sonny, who was sitting in the child¡¯s seat. His eyes were very gentle as he looked at Sonny. ¡°Where are you taking Sonny, Liberty?¡± At the same time, a BMW drove by. When the female driver saw that scene, she immediately said to the person in the passenger seat, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, is that Duncan?¡± Chapter 1215 Chapter 1215 Chapter 1215 The driver was Lily. The car she was driving belonged to Mrs. Lewis and it was lent to her to use while she was N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. in Wiltspoon. Mrs. Lewis really liked Lily and tried her best to matchmake her with Duncan. However, Lily was not in a hurry to pursue Duncan. Instead, she apanied Mrs. Lewis everywhere when she was free so that Mrs. Lewis would like her more. She was trying to appeal to her mother¨Cinw first. At Lily¡¯s words, Mrs. Lewis turned her head to look outside the window. Lily was driving, and there were many cars behind them, so she could not suddenly brake or slow down. They were already a distance away by the time Mrs. Lewis turned to look. However, a mother could still easily recognize her son. ¡°It¡¯s Duncan,¡± Mrs. Lewis said confidently. ¡°Who¡¯s that woman talking to him?¡± Mrs. Lewis did not see Liberty clearly and said, ¡°Lily, there¡¯s an intersection ahead where you can make a U¨Cturn. Let¡¯s go back and see who that woman is.¡± Her youngest son seldom interacted with the opposite sex unless they were family or talking about business. That was why he was still single. Mrs. Lewis felt that the scar on her son¡¯s face was too scary. It became the main reason he was still single. ¡°Okay.¡± Lily also wanted to know who that woman was. Duncan was the target she wanted to pursue now. Harmon Corporation wanted to do business in Wiltspoon. If she could marry Duncan, it would be a great help to the Harmon family. Duncan and her together would be a strong duo. She appreciated a man like Duncan who could make a living for himself without relying on his family. Even if he had a scar on his face, he was very masculine. She liked and admired him very much. Duncan did not know that his mother and Lily saw him talking to Liberty. After asking Liberty, he rubbed Sonny¡¯s head and wanted to carry him, but the boy refused. Thus, Duncan had to give up. ¡°I went out to handle some business, but it¡¯s done now. I¡¯m taking Sonny back for a nap.¡± Liberty asked him, ¡°Where are you going, Mr. Lewis? We won¡¯t take up your time if you¡¯re busy.¡± Duncan smiled. ¡°I¡¯ve just finished dealing with my business too. I¡¯m going back to the office now.¡± He looked at Sonny and said to her, ¡°You should buy a car, Liberty. A car will be safer if you¡¯re taking Sonny with you. It¡¯s always more dangerous on the road with a bike.¡± ¡°I told Seren to apany me to a dealership this weekend. I¡¯ll buy a car if one catches my eye. You¡¯re right, it¡¯s time I get a car. It¡¯ll be more convenient when I have to stock up on ingredients too.¡± She thought about buying a cargo motorcycle, but after thinking about it, it was better to buy a sedan, which would be more convenient to move the ingredients she needed for her shop. Duncan said, ¡°A close acquaintance of mine runs a car dealership. How about I bring you there?¡± ¡°No need. Seren will go with me. You¡¯re a busy man. I shouldn¡¯t take up your time.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you¡¯d be going on the weekend? I don¡¯t have work during the weekend either, and I have nothing to do at home. Serenity¡¯s knowledge of cars definitely won¡¯t be asprehensive as what men know.¡± Duncan tried toe up with a reason to apany Liberty. Libertyughed and said, ¡°Seren doesn¡¯t know much, but Zachary does. Zachary doesn¡¯t work during the weekend either.¡± Duncan stopped talking. He forgot about Zachary. If Serenity was apanying her sister to look for a car, there was no way Zachary would not tag along. ¡°Then, let me know if you need any help.¡± Chapter 1216 Chapter 1216 Chapter 1216 ¡°Okay. Thank you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty thanked him politely and added, ¡°We¡¯ll be going now. Goodbye.¡± Duncan said, ¡°Drive safe. Bye, Sonny.¡± Sonny waved at him. ¡°Bye bye, Dunc.¡± Liberty rode her e¨Cbike and left with her son. Duncan stood where he was and watched the mother and son¡¯s backs fade away. When they were out of sight, he turned back to his car, started the engine, and went back to his office. After his car left, the BMW parked a hundred feet behind his car drove off as well. ¡°Drive ¡®faster, Lily. Overtake Duncan¡¯s car and go further ahead to see who that woman is.¡± The two did not drive past Duncan after making the U¨Cturn because they were afraid of being discovered by him, so they stopped not far from where he parked. However, they could not see the woman¡¯s face clearly from that distance. Mrs. Lewis saw Liberty before, but that was when Liberty was still fat. Now that Liberty had lost dozens of pounds, Mrs. Lewis could not recognize her anymore. Furthermore, she only nced at Liberty a few times during the Stone family banquet. She did not pay attention to Liberty. Lily hummed. She stepped on the gas and sped up behind Duncan¡¯s car. She soon overtook his car. Duncan only saw his mother¡¯s car when it overtook him. However, he did not catch up to say hello to them. There was no need for him to ask to know that his mother was with Lily. He was afraid Lily would pester him again if he tried to catch up with them. Lily was someone who made a killing in the business world. When she had her eyes on a man, she pursued him openly and fearlessly. She was a very bold woman. Liberty rode a bike, so she was not as fast as a car. A few minutester, Lily¡¯s car passed by Liberty. Mrs. Lewis lowered the window to have a look. She could not see Liberty¡¯s face since she was wearing a helmet, but she saw Sonny sitting in the children¡¯s seat. She quickly raised the window again. Her expression was dark. ¡°Do you know her, Mrs. Lewis?¡± Lily asked curiously. She saw Sonny too. The woman had a child, which meant she had a husband. Lily¡¯s nervousness disappeared when she realized there was no way the woman would be her love rival. Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°If my guess is correct, she¡¯s Liberty Hunt. She¡¯s Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece as well as the Mrs. York¡¯s older sister. ¡°I¡¯ve seen her before, but she was very fat when we met. I couldn¡¯t help but dislike her when I saw her back then. How could she neglect herself so much to have gotten so fat? I¡¯d be more surprised if her husband didn¡¯t cheat on her or divorce her.¡± Mrs. Lewis did not like Liberty. Original from N?velDrama.Org. Perhaps it was because Liberty made a bad first impression on her. She felt that Liberty was also to me for her failed marriage. Liberty did not know how to love herself and ran circles around her husband and child after marriage. Not only did she not know how to improve herself, but she also did not know how to maintain her figure either. During the time of the divorce, Mrs. Lewis estimated that Liberty weighed more than two hundred pounds. Even if Liberty was tall, she was hideous because she was too fat. ¡°She¡¯s Mrs. York¡¯s sister? The one who divorced?¡± Lily heard Mrs. Lewis talk about the Hunt sisters before, but Mrs. Lewis mentioned Serenity more. After all, Serenity¡¯s status was different now. She was the missus of the York family. If nothing went wrong, her husband would be the next head of the family. Chapter 1217 Chapter 1217 Chapter 1217 They lived in a small circle where paths intersected frequently. They would cross paths eventually. Liberty was a divorcee, and Mrs. Lewis only brought her up in passing. Lily only remembered a bit about Liberty because she was Serenity¡¯s sister. ¡°Yes, she divorcedst yet. Her husband had an affair. I heard he was violent toward her too and wanted to go Dutch with her when it came to living expenses. Liberty stayed at home to raise their son and was considered a housewife, yet her husband wanted to go Dutch with her. It was clear it was because he disliked her, but she didn¡¯t realize it. ¡°I heard she only found out that her husband was cheating on her when she received evidence of his affair. Her husband was very stingy with her, but he bought luxury goods for his mistress. ¡°Women, especially married women, need to love themselves more. If you don¡¯t know how and to love yourself, you can¡¯t expect your husband to love and cherish you. You have to try maintain financial independence. If you can¡¯t do that, then you need to at least seize the financial power of the family. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°There¡¯s no need to save your husband¡¯s money for him. If you save too much, he¡¯ll just give his money to someone else to spend. He won¡¯t appreciate you if you try to save money for him and don¡¯t buy new clothes or cosmetics for yourself. In fact, he¡¯ll think that you don¡¯t care about your appearance. He¡¯ll think you¡¯re ugly and refuse to bring you out with him because you¡¯re shameful.¡± Mrs. Lewis criticized Liberty for ending up getting a divorce because Liberty did not know how to love herself after marriage. Then, she said to Lily, ¡°Lily, don¡¯t worry. Duncan isn¡¯t that kind of man. ¡°If you marry Duncan, we¡¯re also very open¨Cminded and won¡¯t stop you from going out to work. You¡¯ll still be free to do whatever you want. We all support you.¡± Lily was one of the core figures of Harmon Corporation. Mrs. Lewis knew that a woman like Lily was unlikely to stay indoors as a housewife after marriage. She assured Lily in advance so that Lily would not worry. Lilyughed while driving. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, Duncan keeps avoiding me. I think it¡¯ll take a long time for me to pursue him. ¡°However, I agree with you. Was Liberty even fatter in the past? She still looks quite chubby now.¡± Liberty had notpletely lost her excess flesh. For a girl with a good figure like Lily, Liberty was considered fat. Lily did not think much about it even after finding out that Liberty was divorced. There was no way Duncan would marry a divorced single mother. The elders of the Lewis family would not agree either. Furthermore, that woman was still chubby. Duncan had high standards and was so picky that he did not even take a liking to Lily. How could he fancy someone like Liberty, who was fat, divorced, and already had a child? Lily felt that Duncan only stopped to talk to Liberty out of consideration for Zachary. No matter what, Liberty was Zachary¡¯s sister¨Cinw. Zachary spoiled his wife, so Duncan was respectful to his sister¨Cinw. After all, Liberty took care of Serenity like a mother. ¡°Duncan treats Liberty¡¯s son very well,¡± Mrs. Lewis said. She never knew that her youngest son would like a child so much. Lily said, ¡°Little children are cute. Everyone likes them.¡± Mrs. Lewis nced at Lily but said nothing. Lily felt that Duncan would never like a divorced woman, so she did not care about Liberty. However, Mrs. Lewis was a mother and knew her son better. She had a feeling that Duncan¡¯s attention to Liberty and her son was a little beyond ordinary. After thinking about it, she took out her phone and called someone to inquire about. Liberty¡¯s current situation. Chapter 1218 Chapter 1218 Chapter 1218 What Mrs. Lewis wanted to know was whether Liberty and Duncan contacted each other frequently in private. Lily heard Mrs. Lewis order someone to investigate Liberty¡¯s recent situation and asked, ¡± Mrs. Lewis, you don¡¯t think that Duncan is interested in Liberty, right?¡± ¡°Liberty is divorced and fat. Duncan¡¯s standards aren¡¯t that low, but we still have to take precautions. Maybe Liberty is interested in Duncan. Lily, I want my daughter¨Cinw to be someone like you.¡± Even if Liberty had never divorced, she was still not up to Mrs. Lewis¡¯s standards. Lily paused. ¡°You¡¯re right, I didn¡¯t think of that. I just figured that Duncan would never like a divorced woman. Since you don¡¯t approve of her, I won¡¯t worry about her either.¡± ¡°Lily, Duncan has always been single. There are no rumors or scandals about him, but he has never pursued a girl before either. He¡¯s a bit boorish when ites to emotions, but if anyone can conquer him, he¡¯ll spoil that woman with a lifetime of tenderness. ¡°Don¡¯t underestimate Liberty. She¡¯s Mrs. York¡¯s sister, and Duncan is good friends with Zachary. If they meet often and spend more time together, who¡¯s to say what will happen? Maybe Liberty will grow ambitious and want to be like her sister, climbing up the socialdder overnight. ¡°So, the person you have to watch out for the most is Liberty. If you notice something, I believe you can deal with her.¡± Lily¡¯s expression turned solemn, no longer daring to underestimate Liberty. Duncan might not fall in love with a divorced woman, but there was no guarantee that the divorced woman would not have thoughts about Duncan. ¡°I understand, Mrs. Lewis.¡± Lily was confident that she could conquer Duncan. The more he avoided her now, the more he would spoil her when he fell in love with herter. ¡°Let¡¯s go to Lewis & Co. to have a look,¡± Mrs. Lewis said. Lily said, ¡°Duncan is very busy. If we go to the office to disturb him when we have nothing to do, it¡¯ll affect his work and make him dislike me more. He might think I¡¯m using you to pressure him.¡± Mrs. Lewis smiled and teased her, ¡°You¡¯re already siding with Duncan and worrying about him. All right, I¡¯ll listen to you. Let¡¯s go shopping instead. I¡¯ll buy you whatever you want. ¡°I don¡¯t need anything, Mrs. Lewis.¡± Lily did not need Mrs. Lewis to buy her clothes and bags. She had plenty of her own. She justcked a husband. ¡°You didn¡¯t bring a formal dress over, right? Let¡¯s go look at gowns. I¡¯ll be attending a banquet in two days. I¡¯ll tell Duncan toe with me, so youe too, but you need a gown to attend. It¡¯s toote to have one tailored now, so we have no choice but to get you a ready¨Cmade one.¡± Lily was happy to apany Mrs. Lewis to the banquet. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s social circle was filled with people from Wiltspoon¡¯s upper ss. She would be able to make friends with the nobledies in Wiltspoon quickly if she apanied Mrs. Lewis to the banquet. ¡°It¡¯s no problem. I sometimes buy ready¨Cmade dresses too.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Mrs. Lewis smiled. ¡°Lily, I¡¯m liking you more by the day. You¡¯re generous, sensible, and capable. It¡¯ll be a dreame true if Duncan can marry you.¡± Lily swallowed all of Mrs. Lewis¡¯s praise. She was beaming with confidence. Chapter 1219 Chapter 1219 Chapter 1219 After settling the matter of her parents¡® house, Serenity returned to the bookstore in a happy mood. Unexpectedly, she saw Shawn, whom she had not seen for a long time. Shawn had taken two days of leave before the weekend, so he had a total of four days off toe back and see his parents. After learning that Serenity was not in the store, he came over to see his cousin. Jasmine did not know when Serenity would return. Shawn had juste in to sit for a while and was just about to leave. However, he bumped into Serenity just as he was leaving. ¡°Serenity.¡± Shawn greeted Serenity with a smile, just like before. ¡°Shawn?¡± Serenity checked Shawn out from head to toe before politely asking, ¡°When did youe back? It¡¯s been a long time. You look much more mature and steadier.¡± ¡°I just got back today. My mom isn¡¯t feeling well, and the factory isn¡¯t too busy for the time being, so I took two days off before the weekend to visit my mom. Yes, it¡¯s been a long time. You look even prettier than before.¡± Serenity had always been good¨Clooking. Now that she had the nourishment of love, she was like a flower in full bloom. However, Shawn knew very well that this blossoming flower only bloomed for Zachary. Although it had been a long time since they met and Shawn gave up on Serenity, he still could not help but feel jealous of Zachary when he saw her again. ¡°Is Aunt Rachel okay?¡± Serenity asked with concern after hearing that Rachel was not feeling well. She looked at her friend. ¡°Jasmine didn¡¯t tell me.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing serious. She just caught a cold. Sick people are frail, so they called Shawn and worried him so much that he took time off work and rushed back to take her to a doctor. Aunt Rachel is resting now, so he¡¯s out and about meeting some friends. He dropped by as he was passing by.¡± Zachary¡¯s bodyguards were present. Jasmine was worried that Zachary would misunderstand and think that Shawn still had feelings for Serenity, so she exined Shawn¡¯s presence here on his behalf. It was true that Shawn did note for Serenity. He also called Jasmine to ask about Serenity before he came. He only entered when Jasmine said that Serenity was not in. ¡°It¡¯s the flu seasontely, so do tell Aunt Rachel to take care of her health.¡± Shawn hummed. ¡°Yes, many people are catching colds. The hospital was crowded too. ¡°Well, Jas and Serenity, I¡¯ll make a move now.¡± Shawn did not linger. He looked deeply at Serenity and smiled at the twodies before leaving. He left not five minutes after Serenity returned. After he left, Serenity said to her friend, ¡°Shawn is much more mature now.¡± Jasmine narrowed her eyes. Serenity tapped Jasmine¡¯s forehead in amusement. ¡°Don¡¯t give me that look. I didn¡¯t love Shawn before, I don¡¯t love him now, and I won¡¯t love him in the future. He¡¯ll always just be a younger brother to me.¡±All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1220 Chapter 1220 Chapter 1220 Jasmine rubbed her forehead and said, ¡°I know you never loved Shawn. I was just worried that you¡¯d feel guilty. Shawn is fine the way he is now. He¡¯s the sessor of the family, so he has to suffer a little. He needs to face some setbacks in order to grow and be steady.¡± ¡°Aunt Rachel did all that for his own good. It¡¯s good that he was sent away to train himself. What do I have to be guilty about?¡± Serenity sat at the counter and took out her phone. ¡°I¡¯ll tell my man about this lest he gets jealous and misunderstands again.¡± Taking the initiative to tell Zachary was better than him finding out from the bodyguards. With Zachary¡¯s personality, he was sure to get jealous again if he found out from his bodyguards that Shawn and she had met. Jasmine went into the kitchen. After a while, she came out with a te of grapes and ced it on the counter, saying,¡± Shawn bought these¨Cthe seedless grapes we often eat. ¡°So, how was it? Was your dad your grandparents¡® biological son?¡± Jasmine asked with concern as she took a seat. ¡°Yeah. The DNA test I did with my granddad showed that we¡¯re rted by blood. After I took the report and showed it to John and the others, they finally behaved and stopped fussing. ¡°We¡¯ve resolved the matter through a negotiation.¡± Serenity picked up a bunch of grapes and popped one into her mouth. ¡°These grapes are so sweet.¡± Jasmine saw that Serenity was in a happy mood and smiled. ¡°It¡¯s great that you¡¯ve settled it. You don¡¯t have to get involved with them in the future.¡± ¡°We¡¯ll be going back tomorrow to sign a new agreement with them. I¡¯ll give them the money after they transfer the title deed of the house to my sister.¡± ¡°Did you buy their share of thend?¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°Yeah, the solution they came up with was either we buy their share, or they buy ours. My grandparents don¡¯t have much money left, so it¡¯ll cost a lot if they want to buy our share. ¡°He has a bunch of sons and grandchildren, but none of them are willing to pay. He was so angry that he told us to buy his share instead, and they¡¯d keep the money for their retirement. They¡¯ll continue living in the house, but his children will pay the rent and utilities. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to split hairs like this, but since they still tried to take advantage of us, I had no choice. It¡¯s not like my dad was his only son. He has four sons. Even though my dad is gone, he still has three sons. ¡°In rural areas, each family will pay for their parents¡® expenses or take turns to live with and care for them when the elders are still alive. They can¡¯t just live in my house for free, right? That¡¯s why I asked forpensation. I don¡¯t need the money; I just don¡¯t want to be taken advantage of.¡± Original from N?velDrama.Org. Jasmine said, ¡°You did the right thing. They only know how to take advantage of others to gain benefits for themselves, but when it¡¯s time for them to live out their old age, they push the responsibility to your family instead.¡± ¡°John stated he wanted his share of our granddad¡¯s assets but nothing to do with. Granddad¡¯s retirement. He said that Granddad gave birth to his dad, but not to him, so the responsibility of taking care of Granddad in his old age had nothing to do with him. The old man was livid.¡± Although Serenity felt that Old Mr. Hunt was getting his just desserts, she did not feel happy or satisfied. She just felt sorry for her parents. Her parents were incredibly filial to their parents when they were still alive, but the more filial her dad was, the less her grandfather liked him. Even after her dad passed away, he was still being bullied by his own parents.1 Jasmine paused. ¡°Isn¡¯t John your granddad¡¯s favorite? He used to have an annual sry of a million dors when he worked in Elisa¡¯spany. Elisa made him lose his job, but he deserves it. A person like him shouldn¡¯t have a good life.¡± ¡°Old Mr. Hunt fought for my family property because he wanted to give everything to John, so John¡¯s words really pissed him off. That was why he so easily agreed to the solution we proposed.¡± Serenity felt the reason her granddadpromised so quickly wasrgely because he was hurt by his sons and grandsons¡® attitude. In any case, the issue with the house was resolved. Chapter 1221 Chapter 1221 Chapter 1221 Jasmine sighed and said, ¡°Some parents can be quite baffling. They disapprove of their grateful children but y favorites with other children who can¡¯t care less about them.¡± Serenity took a moment in silence before saying, ¡°These parents hurt the kids who care while their favorite children hurt them instead. Some siblings never get close and even cut contact after their parents pass away because of the deferential treatment among siblings.¡± ¡°I¡¯m lucky my family is not like that. My grandparents treat us all equally. There are no favorites or least liked. My uncles are nice too. We get along well with our cousins,¡± Jasmine said. Serenity did not add to the conversation after that. She wished she had a family like Jasmine¡¯s. She was not on good terms with her cousins. Ring, ring, ring¡­. Jasmine¡¯s phone rang. Thinking it was Josh, Jasmine pulled out her phone and said to her best friend, ¡°He didn¡¯t call me the whole day today. I think he¡¯s starting to get bored of me.¡± Serenity amusedly replied, ¡°Mr. Bucham loves you to the moon and back. He¡¯ll never get bored of you. ¡°Like attracts like. My man ismitted, so I¡¯m sure his best friends have the same attitude when it comes to love too. Don¡¯t worry, Mr. Bucham had been single for so long for the right woman toe along, and that person is you.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not Josh. It¡¯s my brother.¡± Serenity murmured, ¡°Oh, it¡¯s not Mr. Bucham¡­¡± She thought Josh called to ask Jasmine out for dinner. Serenity had informed Zachary that she met Shawn, but Zachary had not replied. She wondered if Zachary might get jealous. She only happened to run into Shawn, and the meetup was no more than five minutes. Surely, the man would not be jealous¡­ right? Since he was not responding, Zachary was probably busy at work. Zachary was the CEO of York Corporation after all. Time was money to him.. ¡°Drake.¡± Jasmine epted the call from her brother. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Something¡¯s going on at home?¡± ¡°Come home quickly, Jas! There¡¯s something you got to see. Drake sounded thrilled over the phone as he urged Jasmine to hurry home. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°What¡¯s that?¡± Jasmine was itching with curiosity. ¡°What¡¯s the something I got to see?¡°. Drake answered with a smile, ¡°I can¡¯t tell you right now. Anyway, juste back as soon as you can. It¡¯s something good. That¡¯s what I can tell you. Hurry home, okay?¡± ¡°B*stard! Just put me out of my misery. What is it? Did something good happen at home? Did Dad win the jackpot? Did you bring your girlfriend home?¡± Mr. Sox got into the habit of buying lottery tickets. He had never won anything, but that was his guilty pleasure. He would only buy the same set of numbers, and he believed the numbers would win him the jackpot one day. ¡°Well, I won¡¯t tell you toe home quickly if I¡¯m bringing my girlfriend home. Stop asking, Jas. I told you it¡¯s something good. Juste home, and hurry. Tell Serenity to watch the shop tonight or just close early.¡± Jasmine looked at the time¨Cschool was almost out. ¡°Drake, just tell me already. The kids are getting out of school soon, so that means we¡¯re going to be busy at the shop. This better be good, so unless the sky is falling down, I won¡¯t be heading back until after six.¡± Chapter 1222 Chapter 1222 Chapter 1222 Drake was not going to say more. ¡°Jasm, hand the phone to Serenity. I need to talk to her.¡± Jasmine mumbled, ¡°I¡¯m your sister, and you¡¯re saying something happened at home. You don¡¯t want to tell me, but you n to tell Serenity? Do you think you can hide it from me, b* stard?¡± Despite the nagging, Jasmine passed the phone to Serenity and told her best friend, ¡°Drake is keeping me guessing. I don¡¯t know what¡¯s going on, but he wants to speak to you.¡± Taking the phone with a smile, Serenity asked Drake who was on the other end of the line, What¡¯s up, Drake? You can talk to me. I promise to keep it a secret. I won¡¯t let your sister know.¡± Truth be told, Jasmine had stuck her ear against the phone so she could get the message. straight from Drake. Her brother piqued her curiosity. Now, Jasmine was dying to find out what was going on at home. All she was told was that it was good, but it was not enough for her to go by. ¡°Serenity, is my sister eavesdropping next to you? Go outside, and don¡¯t let my sister follow you. Then, I¡¯ll tell you.¡± Drake knew his sister too well. Serenity looked at her best friend. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Dang. Is the boy spying on us or something?¡± Jasmine chewed her brother out. With a smile, Serenity got up and walked out of the shop. She refused to let Jasminee along. Thinking that Serenity would tell herter, Jasmine left Serenity to walk out of the shop. There was no telling what Drake said to Serenity. Serenity returned several minutester and gleefully handed the phone back to Jasmine. She said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t bother about the shop, Jasmine. Just get home.¡± ¡°I have Milo and Harry here. They can help. Just go home.¡± ¡°What is it? Why are you all acting secretive? What did he tell you, Serenity? Just tell me.¡± The suspense was killing Jasmine. Yet, her best friend and brother would not let slip. ¡°You¡¯ll know when you get home. It¡¯ll ruin the surprise if I tell you now. I can tell you that it¡¯s a good thing though. Now go home.¡± Serenity happily urged her best friend to go home. She grabbed Jasmine¡¯s car keys and slipped them into Jasmine¡¯s hand. ¡°Go on.¡± H Jasmine stared at her best friend and then at her car keys in her hand before lightly pounding on Serenity¡¯s shoulder. She grumbled, ¡°You won¡¯t even give me something to work on even though we have been friends for more than a decade. Well, I¡¯ll have to see for myself what¡¯s this big surprise.¡± Serenity saw her best friend off and uttered, ¡°Don¡¯t speed on the road. There¡¯s nothing to worry about. It¡¯s a good thing.¡± Jasmine mounted her e¨Cbike, started the engine, and replied, ¡°Got it.¡± Standing at the shop entrance, Serenity watched her best friend ride away. Although it was something good, Jasmine could not figure out what it was. Her brother refused to tell her, and even Serenity was holding back on her. Serenity said something about ruining the surprise. While many guesses went through her head, Jasmine rolled the throttle and made her way back home. Fortunately, her home was not too far from the school. She soon reached her town. Her town was well¨Cdeveloped and bustling like the city. Before getting to her house, Jasmine noticed a lot of people gathered around her gate. There were many cars parked outside too. These people held their phones up and took photos. What was going on? Why were they crowding at the gate of her house? What were they snapping? Chapter 1223 Chapter 1223 Chapter 1223 ¡°Jasmine¡¯s back.¡± Someone spotted Jasmine and shouted out loud. The crowd at the gate of the Soxes¡® residence gave way by parting into two rows. Jasmine got a good look at the people at the gate. Most of them were the townspeople and nearby tenants. They looked at her, all smiles. With everybody moving out of the way, Jasmine found out what everybody was looking at from the gate. It was a humongous disy of flowers. Josh, who had not called or texted her all day, stood next to the flowers with a bouquet of roses in his hands. He was smiling widely at her. Jasmine stopped her bike. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. ¡°Go on, Jas.¡± Drake drew close and dragged his sister to walk ahead. Jasmine was pulled to the floral disy. Those were roses. Josh used thousands of roses to spell out something. [Marry me, Jasmine!] Josh was proposing. After giving it a lot of thought, Josh decided to go the cheesy way and form words with flowers. It would be beautiful and romantic. He could then propose to Jasmine before everybody. Jasmine was either at the bookshop or at home. Josh was concerned about the disruption to students since the bookshop was in front of the school. That was why he chose to disy the flowers at the gate of her house and propose to her here instead. The Soxes could bear witness to his feelings for Jasmine. He wanted Jasmine to be his wife. The Buchams and the Soxes had been pining for the pair to get married. Mrs. Bucham would visit the Soxes every now and then, and the elders of both families had a lot to talk about. They had been waiting for Josh to propose, so they could begin preparations for the wedding. ¡°Isn¡¯t it nice, Jas? Josh formed the words with flowers himself, and it took him a long time. to do it too. Josh bought all the roses from every florist in Wiltspoon. A lot of florists had to restock.¡± Jasmine looked at the letters arranged in flowers. The sea of red bounced a rosy shimmer off her face and melted her heart. Josh had always been a romantic. Although his proposal was corny, she was able to see the beauty in it. Bearing a bouquet, Josh approached her. Drake got out of the way and left the center stage to Josh. Everybody was watching. Some even took videos to bear witness to the lovers¡® happy and exciting moment. Josh got down on one knee before Jasmine and presented the bouquet to her. He tenderly asked Jasmine, ¡°I love you, Jasmine. Will you marry me? I will love, cherish, and honor you for the rest of my days.¡± Jasmine looked into his eyes. She could see the affection reflecting in his eyes as he looked at her. Anticipation with a little bit of nervousness and fear were written all over his face. He must be scared that she might turn down his proposal. ¡°Say yes, Jasmine. Mr. Bucham is so good to you. I¡¯m an olddy, and even I¡¯m moved by him,¡± One of Jasmine¡¯s aunts remarked with a smile. ¡°Yeah, Jasmine. You and Mr. Bucham made a cute couple. You¡¯re made for each other.¡± ¡°Jasmine¡­¡± ¡°Jasmine¡­¡± Many of the onlookers were the townspeople and Jasmine¡¯s rtives. From the bottom of their hearts, they hoped Jasmine would ept Josh¡¯s proposal. Turning her head, Jasmine nced at her parents standing at the door. Shawn and Aunt Rachel were there with her parents too. Aunt Rachel must be here to visit the Sox family and happened toe across Josh¡¯s proposal. Chapter 1224 Chapter 1224 Chapter 1224 Seeing that Jasmine took her time to respond to Josh, Mrs. Lowe said to Mrs. Sox, ¡°Why isn¡¯t Jasmine saying anything? Josh is such a good man. She won¡¯t find another man like him. I wish I could say yes on her behalf.¡± Shawn uttered, ¡°She shouldn¡¯t answer too quickly. She needs time to consider. It will seem like Jas is too eager if she gives an answer too soon.¡± Jasmine was happy to give her hand in marriage. No longer ying it coy, she reached out to take the roses from Josh and loudly responded, ¡°Yes, Josh. I¡¯ll marry you.¡± Josh was overjoyed. He pulled out the engagement ring and took Jasmine¡¯s hand to put the ring on her finger. Jasmine pulled him up. Josh put his arms around her, lowered his gaze to meet hers, and kissed her lips. A thundering apuse broke out. Jasmine closed her eyes and indulged in the brief mingle of hot breaths before opening her eyes. She beamed as Josh held her. ¡°When did you start nning this?¡± she whispered while resting in his arms. ¡°I had been at it for a while now. I thought this idea was the best. Do you like it, Jas?¡± Jasmine lifted her chin to stare at him and replied with a grin, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t have said yes if I didn¡¯t like it. It doesn¡¯t matter to me how you propose so long as your feelings for me are true, I will never rejectOriginal from N?velDrama.Org. you.¡± Of course, Jasmine was more thrilled because he went through the trouble to romance her. It showed that he cared. ¡°No wonder you hadn¡¯t called or texted me. You were preparing a surprise for me.¡± Pecking her forehead, Josh dotingly uttered, ¡°I wanted to give you a surprise. I didn¡¯t let Drake tell you on the phone.¡± ¡°The punk kept telling me it was something good. He left me guessing, but I didn¡¯t think you were going to propose to me.¡± Jasmine was smothered with love and joy. She exchanged gazes with Josh. They only had eyes for each other. It took a while before it hit her that her family and neighbors were watching. Red¨Cfaced, Jasmine pushed Josh away. She was either happy or embarrassed, probably both. ¡°I want to take pictures.¡± Jasmine wanted to capture the sweet moment. She snapped the floral disy, the ring on her finger, and a photo of her and Josh. After the photo session, she locked fingers with Josh and walked up to her parents. ¡°Mom, Dad, I¡¯m engaged. You can finally marry me away.¡± The people burst out inughter. Mrs. Sox said to Josh with a smile, ¡°Thank you, Josh. Thank you.¡± Jasmine remarked, ¡°Mom, you¡¯re talking as if nobody wants me¡­ Josh is not taking a charity case.¡± ¡°Your blind dates didn¡¯t go well. Your aunt and I had been fretting over your marriage because nobody wanted you. Well, at least Josh wants you now. You should be nicer to him.¡± Mrs. Sox pretended to nag her daughter. Josh curled his lips and said, ¡°Mom, I want to thank Jasmine for marrying me. Otherwise, I would be single for life.¡± Following the proposal¡¯s sess, Josh was now calling Mrs. Sox ¡°Mom¡±. Mrs. Sox was more than pleased. They knew what a good man Josh was. They witnessed Josh¡¯s care for Jasmine. Now that Josh had finally popped the question, Mrs. Sox could not stop grinning from ear to ear. Her daughter had found her happily ever after. Chapter 1225 Chapter 1225 Chapter 1225 ¡°Let¡¯s go inside. You must have dinner with us tonight,¡± Mr. Sox said to his future son¨Cin-w. For Josh to propose to his daughter before everybody, Mr. Sox was pleased with his future son¨Cinw. Unlike Mrs. Sox who took to Josh immediately, Mr. Sox needed some warming 1. up. Despite Mr. Sox¡¯s approval of Josh, the man kept a stoic face and remained courteous to Josh. ¡°I will stick around for dinner even if you don¡¯t invite me,¡± Josh brazenlymented. He said hello to Mrs. Lowe and nodded with a smile at Shawn. ¡°Call your father, Shawn. Tell your dad to join us for dinner here after work.¡± Mrs. Lowe happily informed her son to call her husband over. Dinner together would be pleasant. She had always hoped her niece would find a rich husband. To make it happen, Mrs. Lowe had been ying the matchmaker. It was a pity her niece was not too keen about it. Jasmine went so far as to lie prostrate on the floor at a banquet to stop her chances of marrying up. Since then, Mrs. Lowe refrained from introducing men to her. Mrs. Lowe believed that since her niece did not want to marry into a rich and powerful family, she could at least find someone of equal status. The Soxes were rtively well¨Cto¨Cdo. Their business was in the rental market for domestic and commercial spaces. The family¡¯s assets altogether were more than a hundred million dors. Mrs. Lowe was shocked and had mixed feelings about Serenity marrying the richest man in Wiltspoon¨C Zachary York. s, her favorite niece was not as lucky. Later, Mrs. Lowe found out that Zachary and Serenity introduced Josh to Jasmine. Mrs. Lowe was happy her niece managed to find the one in Josh. None of the men she had introduced to Jasmine could beat Josh. Original from N?velDrama.Org. The Lowe family had to send Shawn away to save him and Lowe Enterprise because Shawn had feelings for Serenity and nearly became a homewrecker. Even so, it had always been a concern to Mrs. Lowe that it might be the end of Lowe Enterprise. Nevertheless, the worry was no more when Zachary and Serenity matched Jasmine and Josh together, and there was chemistry. Thanks to Josh and Jasmine, Lowe Enterprise lived to see another day. Shawn said with a smile, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll call Dad right now and tell him toe over after work.¡± Mr. Sox weed his future son¨Cinw into the house and uttered, ¡°Josh, can you ask if your parents are free to have dinner? Since you are now engaged, we, as parents, can discuss your wedding when your parentse.¡± Mrs. Sox chimed in. ¡°That¡¯s right. Call your parents toe now, Josh. We can discuss the wedding tonight.¡± She then told Jasmine, ¡°Jas, tomorrow is Friday. It¡¯s thest working day of the week. You should go to city hall with Josh tomorrow morning and get your marriage license. The wedding reception cane later.¡± Jasmine remarked, ¡°What¡¯s the rush?¡± She turned to Josh and said, ¡°I thought we could have an engagement party before getting our marriage license.¡± Josh held her hand. He would fulfill her wish if that was what she wanted. ¡°Mom, Dad, you can talk about a date when my parentse over. Jasmine and I will have an engagement party. We can get our marriage license next. Of course, I hope we can be married sooner thanter.¡± He did not want a wedding like Zachary¡¯s after fall. Zachary and Serenity already had their marriage license. In fact, the couple had done everything a couple would have done, except for a wedding. That was why they were not in a rush to have a wedding. Josh and Jasmine had not gone all the way, and he simply could not wait. Chapter 1226 Chapter 1226 Chapter 1226 Josh¡¯s statement made Jasmine blush. The guy just could not wait. ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll have the engagement party, then the visit to city hall, and finally the wedding.¡± Josh respected Jasmine¡¯s wishes and only wanted the best for her. Doing things in the right order would make the Soxes happy. The engagement party was bound to be a huge event since Josh was a man of position. The attendees were the movers and shakers of Wiltspoon¡¯s higher society. Josh gave a call to his parents and told them that he proposed to Jasmine. Of course, Jasmine said yes. He asked his parents if they were free toe over and discuss the wedding details with his future parents¨Cinw. Delighted by the news, Mrs. Bucham replied, ¡°I¡¯m busy right now, but nothinges before my son¡¯s marriage. Alright, I¡¯ll ask your dad and uncle to prepare the gift and head over to your inws¡®.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mom.¡± Mrs. Bucham answered with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. I¡¯m happy for you. Josh, be nice to Jasmine. Don¡¯t take advantage of her. I¡¯m not going to take your side just because you¡¯re my son. Jasmine is right when she is right. She is still right even if she¡¯s wrong. A happy wife is the way to a happy life.¡± Her son was picky when it came to women. Finally, Josh was willing to end his bachelor life for Jasmine. Mrs. Bucham had a special ce in her heart for Jasmine. Besides, Mrs. Bucham had given Jasmine the family heirloom during their first meeting. She had decided a long time ago that Jasmine would be her daughter¨Cinw. ¡°Got it, Mom.¡± Josh had his serious face on. Marriage was no fun and games to him. He had thought it through and listened to his own heart. ¡°Alright. I know my son. I trust you will treat Jasmine well. I should end the call here. I need to call the lady of the household and ask her to help pick a gift. We will be there by sundown.¡± Josh was the first to get married in his generation. The senior family members would not take this huge event lightly. Josh was the nephew of the head of the Bucham household. He was also close to Julian, the heir of the Buchams. The Bucham family¡¯s elders, heir, and others arrived at the Soxes¡® residence before sunset. Judging by the arrival of people and vehicles bearing gifts, the neighbors around were under the impression that Josh and Jasmine were getting married that night itself. It was obvious what the Buchams thought about Jasmine. Now that Josh and Jasmine were a sealed deal, the heir, who was older and single, got a lot of attention from his senior family members that night. Julian had to look for an excuse and scram after dinner. Seeing that the elders were concerned about Julian getting married, Jasmine whispered to Josh, asking curiously, ¡°I wonder what type of woman can tie Julian down.¡± Julian was not as well¨Cknown as businessmen like Zachary and Clive in Wiltspoon, but he was more powerful than these CEOs. He was not one to be messed with. Josh uttered, ¡°I don¡¯t know. He never told me the type of girl he¡¯s into. The head of the household is liberal¨Cminded and doesn¡¯t really insert himself into our private lives. Even so, he¡¯s been pushing Julian lately to get married since Julian isn¡¯t getting any younger.¡± Julian was older than Josh, and Josh was in his early thirties. Julian was closer to his forties than he was to his thirties. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. It was natural that the head anddy of the Bucham household were anxious. Chapter 1227 Chapter 1227 Chapter 1227 Jasmine said, ¡°You must introduce to me the girl who wins Julian¡¯s heart. I¡¯m curious as to the type of woman who can tame Julian.¡± Josh drew close to her ear and kissed her cheek before uttering in a raspy voice, ¡°You¡¯re now part of the Bucham family. We will be the first to know when Julian finds a girl.¡± Jasmine gave him a nudge. ¡°The elders are around.¡± Yet, he kissed her. Sure, Jasmine was bold. However, she was shy to engage in any sort of intimacy in the presence of elders. Original from N?velDrama.Org. ¡°The closer we are, the happier they get.¡± Jasmine took a quick look at the oldies. They were going back and forth on the date of the engagement party to pay attention to the couple. ¡°Let¡¯s go for a stroll,¡± Jasmine suggested. Josh was more than happy to oblige. ¡°Mom, Josh and I are going to take a walk.¡± Jasmine told her mom before dragging Josh out the door. The floral disy at the gate shimmered under the night sky. Josh had installed colorful fairy lights along the roses. Once the night took over, the fairy lights were plugged in and lighted. It looked beautiful. The streetlights were turned on too, shedding light on the various luxury cars parked along the street. Jasmine told the man beside her, ¡°I wanted to look for a man of my social ss and be andy. Money wille into my bank ount even in my sleep. I never dreamed that I would be with you.¡± ¡°I own a lot of housing properties and shops. My money is collecting dust in the bank. We can use it for investment. You can still be andy. The houses and shops under my name can be rented, and you can collect the rent. You are free to spend the money however you want. If you don¡¯t want to spend the money, you can use the money to buynd and build houses to rent out. Make your money grow.¡± Jasmine replied, ¡°It costs a lot to buynd and build houses now. It didn¡¯t cost a lot to set up a house for rental when the real estate market first took off. It was a sound business since the rents haven¡¯t gone down.¡± Her generation witnessed the property boom firsthand. The property prices shot up. ¡°Real estate isn¡¯t a lucrative business now. Didn¡¯t you go into an investment with Serenity and Ms. Stone? You can collect rent to invest. Just do whatever you want to. Don¡¯t worry about taking a loss. I got you covered.¡± Jasmine felt loved. She heard the same words Zachary said to Serenity from Josh. Jasmine had nothing to be afraid of since she had a man by her side. She could go ahead and make something of herself. She rested her head against Josh¡¯s shoulder. ¡°Josh, did I ever tell you that I love you?¡± ¡°I think you did, or maybe you didn¡¯t. Even if I had, I still want to hear it from your lips.¡± Jasmine smiled. ¡°I love you!¡± Stopping in his tracks, Josh pulled her into his arms and looked at her with ravishing eyes. He wanted to take her. His ¡°I love you too¡± disappeared into the locking of lips. Jasmine¡¯s best friends, Serenity and Elisa saw the photos and videos posted by Jasmine on Facebook. Serenity was the first to find out about Josh¡¯s proposal. She posted her congrattions under the post. Serenity had only asked Jasmine this morning when she could expect the wedding bells. To her surprise, Josh popped the question by the time evening rolled around. Alone at the shop, Serenity looked at her best friend¡¯s Facebook post and felt happy for her. Her mind wandered to herself and Zachary. They got their marriage license from the get¨Cgo. Zachary had never proposed to her. The jealous man had yet to reply to her text message. God knew whether his non¨Creply was due to his work or jealousy. Chapter 1228 Chapter 1228 Chapter 1228 Unable to stand the wait, Serenity gave Zachary a call. The phone was ringing, but Zachary did not pick up. ¡°Is he really jealous?¡± she mumbled to herself as she gave up calling him. She ced her phone on the cash register and sat in silence for a while before taking out her crafting tools. She might as well pick up on crafting since she had nothing to do. Serenity was only getting to it when a bouquet of flowers appeared before her eyes. Lifting her chin, Serenity met a pair of beady eyes. ¡°You¡­ Why didn¡¯t you pick up your phone? You could¡¯ve at least answered your text message.¡± Dropping the crafting, Serenity took the bouquet and groaned. Zachary looked deeply into her eyes and replied, ¡°I¡¯m here now, so I didn¡¯t take the call. I was busy during the day so I could get off work early today.¡± Seeing that she had finished a miniature tree, he picked up the copper wire product for a look. ¡°Didn¡¯t you hire people? Don¡¯t tire yourself out. You need to watch your hands.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Zachary put down the miniature tree and held her once¨Cinjured hand. The injury was no more, but a scar was left behind as evidence of her carelessness. He caressed the scar, reflecting the heartache in his eyes. She got hurt because of him. ¡°The flowers are fresh.¡± Not wanting Zachary to me himself further, Serenity withdrew her arm and changed the topic. ¡°Didn¡¯t Mr. Bucham buy out all the roses from every florist in Wiltspoon?¡± Since Josh needed to use a lot of flowers for his proposal, Serenity assumed all florists in Wiltspoon would run out of roses. ¡°I waste because of these flowers.¡± Serenity looked at him, ¡°Don¡¯t tell me you went to your home to cut these flowers?¡± Zachary dotingly dabbed her button nose and gave her scarlet lips a quick pinch before replying, ¡°You got that wrong. My home is your home. That is our home. ¡°Do you still remember that you asked Ms. Sox to get a truckload of poultry? They were raised in the orchard near the estate. Theyid a lot of eggs. My mom told me to collect those eggs because nothing beats homegrown eggs. She had a few poultry prepped and killed so I could take them with me too. ¡°I dropped by and cut the bunch of flowers in the garden.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I forgot about that¡­¡± She did a silly thing when he put her under house arrest after she found out about who he was. Serenity had a truckload of poultry dumped at the orchard near the estate. She never gave it another thought after that. ¡°Mom said the free¨Crange chickens are tastier, so she wanted me to bring you some. We¡¯re only two people, plus Nana. I doubt we can finish all of them. I¡¯ll give some to Libertyter.¡± Zachary never forgot to include his sister¨Cinw for the good stuff. For this, Serenity was grateful. He cared for and respected the people who mattered to her. ¡°Mr. Bucham proposed to Jas.¡± ¡°I know.¡± Zachary stared at her, ¡°Are you envious, honey? I can pop the question to you in public.¡± ¡°Oh, please. We¡¯re basically an old married couple now. We got our marriage license a long time ago. I don¡¯t need a proposal.¡± Zachary fell silent for a moment before uttering, ¡°I will give you the grandest wedding so you will be the envy of all women.¡± ¡°I¡¯m already the envy of all women.¡± Zachary got to the cash register and held Serenity from the back. Sticking his chest against her back, he breathed into her ear and could not hide the jealousy in his husky voice. He asked, ¡°Why did Shawn come back? What did he tell you? The look in his eyes when he stared at you¡­ Was it as passionate as ever?¡± Chapter 1229 Chapter 1229 Chapter 1229 Zachary¡¯s scorching lips could touch Serenity¡¯s cheek if she cocked her head back. Putting down the flowers, Serenity stripped his arms from around her, stood up, and turned around to meet him face¨Cto¨Cface. ¡°I asked. Shawn came back because his mother wasn¡¯t feeling well. He took two days off and combined with the weekend, he had four days to visit his mom. ¡°He thought about dropping in to see Jas since he was passing by the bookshop. He didn¡¯te for me. ¡°Jas told me that Shawn called her beforeing to see if I was at the shop. He only came when he was sure I was not there. I ran into him when he was about to leave. We didn¡¯t talk for more than five minutes. ¡°Harry and Milo were outside watching. You know your bodyguards will be on your side if anything does happen.¡± Serenity helplessly pinched his face. ¡°Oh, you. You¡¯re always jealous. I told you that I see Shawn as a younger brother. I don¡¯t have that kind of feeling for him.¡± Taking her pinching hand, Zachary leaned his face into her palm and looked deeply into her eyes. He murmured in a raspy voice, ¡°I mind that you and Shawn know each other for many years. He had a lot more time with you than I did. Not to mention, he loved you too.¡± ¡°There¡¯s nothing we can do about that. I came to know him first, and we¡¯ve been friends for more than a decade. Can you turn back time? I don¡¯t have to know him if you can. I¡¯ll only have you in my life.¡± The man would bring up the fact that she knew Shawn before him when jealousy reared its ugly head. Zachary pursed his lips without a word. He had no control over time. If he did, he would turn back time and grow up with Serenity. Seeing that he could not shake off the ill feelings, Serenity softened her voice and pacified him. ¡°Shawn has moved on, babe. Shawn may be the first to know me, and our friendship dates back years, but you will be the one with me for the rest of my life. ¡°You can have decades with me if I die in my eighties. Isn¡¯t that longer than Shawn?¡± Zachary said, ¡°We¡¯ll live to be a hundred.¡± He added, ¡°You say Shawn¡¯s name so naturally.¡± Serenity answered, ¡°Alright, I won¡¯t call him by his name. He¡¯s Mr. Lowe to me.¡± She continued to soothe him. ¡°Now enough of the jealousy.¡± ¡°Try not to see him again.¡± ¡°Alright, alright. I won¡¯t see him. He¡¯s rarely in Wiltspoon anyway.¡± ¡°Call me babe. Always call me babe.¡± Zachary was milking it. Serenity usually addressed him as Zachary or Mr. York. It was only when he was angry that she would calm him with a term of endearment. ¡°Alright, alright. Babe. You¡¯re a babe. You¡¯re acting like such a baby.¡± Zachary responded, ¡°It sounds weirding out of your mouth.¡± ¡°I¡¯m more used to saying your name.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. With a smile, Serenity pulled his head down and kissed his face before purring, ¡°Babe.¡± An electrifying wave coursed through his body. Now that was the stuff. With the tension along his facial muscles easing up, Serenity sighed in relief. The jealous man was finally pacified. ¡°When can we go back?¡± Chapter 1230 Chapter 1230 Chapter 1230 Zachary asked. ¡°We need to deliver some poultry to my sister, so we should leave now.¡± Her sister might be asleep if they went toote. Thest thing they wanted was to wake Liberty up. Serenity closed the shop and got into Zachary¡¯s car while the bodyguards took her car back. During the ride, she asked Zachary, ¡°Any news on the kidnapping at the zoo? Was it not the Newmans?¡± Zachary took a moment in silence before answering, ¡°The only thing confirmed is that Mr. Newman wasn¡¯t in on it.¡± ¡°If it wasn¡¯t him, was it Mrs. Newman?¡± He mentioned nothing about Mrs. Newman. ¡°Josh is still investigating. Nothing is concrete for now, but we have our eyes on Mrs. Newman.¡± Zachary had believed the prime target was him right from the start. After a series of investigations though, he realized that the mastermind was after Serenity, not him. Since Mrs. Newman and her daughter had a grudge against Serenity, they zeroed in on Mrs. Newman. ¡°Mr. Newman and his wife seem to have a lot of secrets, but they¡¯re cautious and careful not to leave any dirt behind. The couple even piqued Julian¡¯s interest.¡± Julian was interested in cases that were tough to crack. Now that his attention was caught, Julian would handle the investigation himself. ¡°Maybe we¡¯ll get something on the couple if we get help from Ms. Camryn.¡± With Camryn¡¯s disinterested personality, Serenity voiced her concern, ¡°How can she help if she can¡¯t see? No matter what, Mrs. Newman is her mother.¡± Camryn and Mrs. Newman did not get along, but it would not change the fact that Mrs. Newman was her mother. Zachary kept to himself for a while before replying, ¡°We¡¯ll see how things go for Callum and Ms. Camryn. Callum has asked a practicing student of miracle healer to treat Ms. Camryn¡¯s eyes.¡± ¡°Miracle healer?¡± The term did not sound very scientific. Since entering Zachary¡¯s world, Serenity realized she was introduced to a lot of unfamiliar N?velDrama.Org is the owner. things and people. As expected, she lived in a simple world before. ¡°The miracle healer is a highly skilled medical doctor. We don¡¯t know his name. All we know is that he is a genius doctor. He doesn¡¯t work in the hospital or a health center for that matter. ¡°He would only see patients of his preference. He won¡¯t even examine if the patient doesn¡¯t meet his personal liking. Nevertheless, he managed to heal the people he examined. That is how he earned his name. ¡°If my guess is right, he must be about my nana¡¯s age. It must be hard for the old man to move around at this age because not much was heard about himtely, but he has a student. ¡°The student, Dr. Carden, is a legend too. She rescued Mr. Lafayette during the power struggle between the Hamiltons and Lafayettes in Meadspringst year. She was the reason for the fall of the Hamiltons. The police arrested the family. ¡°Later, I heard Dr. Carden became close with Lee and Tim of the Johnson family but nothing more thereafter.¡± Since Lilian Carden did not return to Annenburg with the Johnson family, the Yorks could not track her down. ¡°Dr. Carden is on good terms with thedies of the Lafayettes and the Johnsons. However, Mr. Lafayette and his wife went on a honeymoon. We¡¯ll see whether we can get anything on Dr. Carden from Mrs. Young¨CJohnson.¡± Serenity listened intently and asked, ¡°You talked about taking me on a trip to Annenburg- when are you bringing me? I want to get to know Mrs. Young¨CJohnson. I¡¯ve heard stories about her. ¡°She¡¯s like the heroine in a book. Her life story was movie¨Clike. Everybody wants to be her.¡± Serenity got to know a bit about Jane from Zachary and Elisa. She believed Jane had the best of both worlds¨Cdeeply loved by her inws and her family. Chapter 1231 Chapter 1231 Chapter 1231 Holding Serenity in his arms, Zachary lovingly uttered, ¡°I can make time once I¡¯m done with the tasks at hand. I¡¯ll take you to visit Ben and his wife. Ben carries his mom¡¯sst name too.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Zachary whispered in Serenity¡¯s ear, ¡°You¡¯re the heroine of a book too, honey. Everybody wants to be you.¡± Serenity nudged him away. He would always breathe hot air into her ear along with his whispers. The sensation stirred activity in her loins and tempted her to jump him. The couple returned to the home at Brynfield after delivering the eggs and poultry to Liberty. Mrs. Lane was home. She brought over the couple¡¯s pets. She had been looking after the animals, and now she was back at Brynfield. The moment the door was opened, Snowball came running wagging its tail. Serenity was startled. At a closer look, she squatted and stroked Snowball¡¯s head. She said to Zachary, ¡°How did Snowball get so big?¡± Zachary was not keen on little animals. He only allowed pets at home because he loved Serenity too much. He gave Serenity Snowball and two cats when Serenity expressed her desire to have pets. Snowball loved it when Serenity stroked its head. However, Zachary stood far away in case the fur got all over him. ¡°Mrs. Lane has really looked after them. The thing is getting fatter by the day. ¡°The cats are chonky too. The three of them look like the three little pigs.¡± Rising to her feet, Serenity snapped back, ¡°Snowball has a name. It¡¯s not a thing. You¡¯re not very nice to Snowball.¡± Zachary pursed his lips. ¡°Fine. It¡¯s Snowball, not a thing.¡± Mrs. Lane said hello to the couple with a smile. ¡°Put these in the freezer, Mrs. Lane.¡± Zachary gave the prepped free¨Crange chicken from his mother to Mrs. Lane. Mrs. Lane took the bag for a look before remarking, ¡°You bought a lot of chickens, sir.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t buy them. The missus bought them and left them to wander in the orchard.¡± Mrs. Lane figured out what was up there and then. Serenity brought Snowball over to sit with Zachary. Zachary gave Snowball a look. While Snowball could not take a hint, Serenity could. She knew how much he disliked furry animals. She patted Snowball¡¯s head, gesturing the dog to go and rest. Snowball turned around and walked away. ¡°Is Nana home yet?¡± Serenity asked. ¡°The old missus went with Mr. Kevin on his business trip to Jensburg.¡± Serenity blinked. Why was Nana going on a business trip with Kevin at her age? Jensburg? Oh, that reminded her. The woman Nana picked out for Kevin was in Jensburg. The person was the oldest son of the Queen Enterprise in Jensburg. It was clear as day the reason Grandma May went with Kevin to Jensburg. Theck of response on Kevin¡¯s part must have prompted the olddy to create an opportunity for Kevin to meet with Hayden. York Corporation owned two hotels and amercial mall in Jensburg. Kevin oversaw the food and beverage side of the family business and since the mall was just a short distance from the hotel, Kevin was also in charge of the operation. The Yorks operated five¨Cstar hotels, so Hayden must have been to the hotels before. There was no telling whether she had met Kevin though. ¡°Why didn¡¯t she tell us she was going away with Kevin?¡± Serenity added, ¡°I wanted to go along and join the fun too.¡± She wanted to go with Grandma May and get thetest gossip about everybody. Tilting his head, Zachary looked at his wife and tapped her forehead. He amusedly uttered, ¡°Nana is a bad influence on you.¡± ¡°Nana isn¡¯t bad at all. She¡¯s the world¡¯s best grandmother.¡± Chapter 1232 Chapter 1232 / / By Chapter 1232 ¡°A grandson¨Ctrolling nana.¡± Serenity defended Grandma May. ¡°How did Nana troll you? Everything she does is for your own good. Tell me. How did she troll you?¡± She gave Zachary a tiny shove, but Zachary caught her by the wrist. ¡°Seren, you have not washed your hands after touching the dog. Go and wash your hands. Don¡¯t use your grubby hands of dog fur to touch and push me. You know I can¡¯t stand the fur.¡± Serenity was lost for words. Mrs. Lane said with a smile, ¡°Go on and wash your hands, missus. I made you supper. You can have your supper when your hands are clean.¡± The mention of food was enough for Serenity to let her man off the hook this time. Retrieving her hand from Zachary¡¯s grasp, Serenity got up to wash her hands. While cleaning her hands, she asked. ¡°What did you make me, Mrs. Lane?¡± ¡°Your favorite.¡± Mrs. Lane gestured for Snowball to retreat to its doggie pen. Snowball was a smart dog. Knowing that its charms could not rub off on its male owner, it did not roam around the house. It docilely returned to its territory andy on the ground. Zachary did not have the habit of eating supper. He turned on the TV but nothing piqued his interest. Hence, he went to his room and took a shower before waiting for his beloved wife in bed. Such was the couple¡¯s routine after returning home. The night passed. Serenity and Liberty had to return to their hometown to sign a contract with the Hunt family today, so All You Can Eat was closed for the day. Despite his mother¡¯s urging, Duncan refused to leave Zachary¡¯s ce. nning to get breakfast at All You Can Eat, Duncan woke upte, cleaned himself in a hurry, and went out. He arrived at the diner to find the ce closed. Nevertheless, there was someone standing at the entrance. The person looked familiar to Duncan. It was Jessica. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Jessica came here to fish for some answers from Liberty. This was a new task given to her by the unknown woman. The woman wanted an update on Zachary and Clive¡¯s investigation progress. It had been rough for Jessica in thest two days. The guilt was riding on her conscience as shemitted a crime for the first time. The worst part was her sister¨Cinw was still in the city. The woman had not gone back. Chelsea found fault with everything Jessica did. The tension in the air and the mess caused by Lucas were getting on Jessica¡¯sst nerves. She hoped Chelsea¡¯s family would be hit by a truck. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Duncan drew close and curtly asked Jessica. The abrupt questioning from Duncan gave Jessica a jump. She turned around to meet Duncan¡¯s dark eyes. The menacing scar on Duncan¡¯s deadpan face gave Jessica the creeps. She took a few steps back. ¡°I¨CI¡­ I¡¯m here to have breakfast.¡± Jessica stumbled to put together a lie. Duncan looked at the closed door and callously asked, ¡°Where¡¯s Liberty?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know. The door was closed when I arrived. I don¡¯t see Liberty or Sonny around. Her workers aren¡¯t here either. ¡°Why are you standing here if Liberty is not open for business?¡± Jessica immediately answered, ¡°I¨CI¡¯ll leave right now.¡± Holding onto her bag, Jessica quickly slipped past Duncan. The man was a horrifying sight. She would probably get nightmares if she stared at him. Chapter 1233 Chapter 1233 Chapter 1233 After Duncan scared Jessica away, he looked at the closed door and pulled out his phone to call Liberty. It did not take long for Liberty to ept the call. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you open today, Liberty?¡± Duncan came off a bit harsh. ¡°Seren and I are off to take care of some stuff in our hometown. I¡¯m closed for the day to resolve the ownership issue with our parents¡® home today. What¡¯s the matter?¡± Duncan asked, ¡°Oh. Is it going to be resolved today? Do you need to go to court?¡± He could give a hand if Liberty wanted to take the Hunt family to court. ¡°We¡¯re settling it out of court. I got to go, Mr. Lewis. Talk soon.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Duncan hung up the call. Why did he not receive any news about Liberty¡¯s home issue being resolved? She did not tell him anything. Come to think of it, why would she tell him? He was not anybody to her. She had no obligation to talk to him about her personal matters. With that in mind, Duncan felt a lot better. Since All You Can Eat was not open for business, Duncan had to rush to the office for a meeting on an empty stomach. Not too long after he left, Lily appeared at the diner. Of course, Lily could not see anything since the ce was closed. She still had no idea that Liberty owned All You Can Eat. She came to deliver homemade breakfast to Duncan. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Spotting Duncan¡¯s parked vehicle right in front of the diner from afar, Lily pulled up and watched Duncan. Lily saw Duncan scaring Jessica away. She even took a photo of them so Mrs. Lewis could identify who Duncan was talking to. Jessica left in a fluster, but she had a quick exchange with Duncan, so it meant that they knew each other. Lily was confident at first that she would bag Duncan in no time. Despite Mrs. Lewis¡® heads¨Cup, she remained optimistic while being on the lookout for other women around Duncan. Lily would study and eliminate any potential rivals. By potential rivals, it was any woman who knew Duncan and had an interaction with him. She would never go for anything that did not guarantee results. After Duncan drove off, Lily started the engine and followed him. No sooner had Duncan stepped into his office than his secretary knocked on the door. ¡°Mr. Lewis, Ms. Harmon is here.¡± Duncan took a seat and said, ¡°Tell her I don¡¯t have time today. I¡¯m going to a meeting. She can look for my mom for anything.¡± The secretary was without a word. It was toote. Ms. Harmon was here and right behind him. ¡°I want to talk about a partnership with you. I don¡¯t think Mrs. Lewis can help me with that,¡± Lily said while carrying two food containers into the CEO¡¯s office. The secretary tactfully retreated out of the office. With Lily entering the office, Duncan cussed his secretary in his mind for informing him toote. It was his mother¡¯s fault too. Since his mother brought Lily to stroll around thepany, it was basically giving Lily the green light to roam as she pleased. s, Mrs. Harmon was a good friend of his mom for decades, so Duncan was not in a position to kick Lily out. Besides, Lily had not done anything to cross the line. She was merely visiting hispany and proposing a coboration. Chapter 1234 Chapter 1234 Chapter 1234 For personal and professional reasons, Duncan could not tell Lily to get out. ¡°I guess you must not have breakfast yet, Duncan.¡± Lily drew close with a smile and put the food containers on Duncan¡¯s desk. ¡°Mrs. Lewis told me to bring them to you. She said you often sleepte and wake upte, so you don¡¯t have time to eat. Mrs. Lewis told me to bring you breakfast when she found out that I was going to meet you. ¡°I was driving behind you just now. I saw you going to a diner called All You Can Eat. Do you usually have breakfast there?¡± She should try the food there sometime. Was the food that good? Lily wondered whether Duncan was at the diner for the food or the operator. ¡°Ms. Harmon, my schedule is full for the day, so I don¡¯t have time to discuss a partnership today. I need to get to a meeting in a minute.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll book a time with the secretaryter. We can talk business when you have time. What time is your meeting?¡± ¡°Nine o¡¯clock.¡± Lily looked at the time. Ten more minutes to go. Curling her lips, she opened the lids of the food containers and put the food right in front of Duncan one by one. ¡°Ten minutes should be enough for you to finish the food. Better eat up. This is Mrs. Lewis¡¯s love for you. Don¡¯t turn down her loving gesture.¡± Original from N?velDrama.Org. Lily made the food herself. Nevertheless, she did not mention she was the chef. Instead, she put it vaguely that Mrs. Lewis had the breakfast delivered to him. Since she talked about a mother¡¯s love, and Duncan was hungry, he dly epted the food and ravished the meal in mere minutes. ¡°Do we have a new chef at home?¡± Putting down the cutleries, Duncan pulled out a napkin and wiped his mouth. Lily poured him a ss of water. Duncan thanked her and took the ss for a few sips. ¡°Could you tell?¡± Lily asked with a grin, ¡°How do you think the new chef did?¡± ¡°Not bad.¡± Nevertheless, he preferred Liberty¡¯s cooking. He was impressed by the taste made with the simplest ingredients. Liberty¡¯s food brought Duncan back to his youthful days of strolling the streets with his boys. He had the pleasure of sampling a lot of street food that he would never taste as the son of the Lewis family. While those years gave him great pain, they also brought him down to earth. Even when he became a CEO, he remained unassuming. He was no different than any ordinary folk except for being in the higher bracket of ie. Lily said with a smile, ¡°All that matters is that the food is delicious to you.¡± She nced at the time before clearing the food containers. She reminded Duncan, ¡°Your meeting is starting, Duncan. I¡¯m going to report to Mrs. Lewis on the mission aplished. By the way, Mrs. Lewis hopes you can be home for lunch. If you can¡¯t make it home, she said there¡¯s an event in a few days. She hopes you¡¯ll attend it with her.¡± Lily was going with Mrs. Lewis too. Mrs. Lewis intended to introduce thedies of the higher society in Wiltspoon to her. Serenity would probably be attending the event with Mrs. Stone. Mrs. Lewis mentioned that Mrs. Stone had been active within the circletely. She would reply favorably to any social invitations. She must be trying to bring Serenity into the exclusive circle. No one would want to get on Mrs. Stone¡¯s bad side as she was thedy of the Stone household. Besides, Mrs. Stone was once a business heavyweight before she retired from the corporate world. Furrowing his brows, Duncan uttered, ¡°Why does she want me to attend with her? Can I trouble you to go with my mom if my mom if you have time? I can¡¯t be bothered with social gatherings.¡± Chapter 1235 Chapter 1235 Chapter 1235 Lily knew Duncan would say that. She uttered with a smile, ¡°Duncan, Mrs. Lewis wants you to go with her. I can¡¯t rece you. I¡¯m only the daughter of Mrs. Lewis¡¯s friend anyway. I¡¯m not family. ¡°I¡¯m not keen on social events either, but we don¡¯t have a choice most of the time. We have to fulfill our obligations.¡± Duncan had attended plenty of business parties to talk business. Before Lewis & Co. took off, he had to attend business engagements to drum in partnerships. Lewis and Co. was now a well¨Cknownpany in Wiltspoon. Duncan would only discuss big contracts with other CEOS while the trades on a smaller scale were left to his management team. He started to attend fewer of these gatherings unless his two best friends were going. Withpany around, Duncan would turn up briefly. However, more often than not, Zachary would not show up. Hence, it fueled Duncan¡¯sck of presence at social events. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. ¡°Who is the organizer? Where¡¯s the party?¡± Duncan asked. Lily replied, ¡°Mrs. Lewis said it was Old Mr. Dawson. It¡¯s going to be held at Wiltspoon Hotel.¡± Hearing that it was Old Mr. Dawson, Duncan had nothing more to say. The Dawsons were not as wealthy as the Yorks, but they were among the top ten richest families in Wiltspoon. Old Mr. Dawson was a personable man, and the Dawson family kept a low profile in Wiltspoon. The movers and shakers of Wiltspoon¡¯s corporate world would give Aaron Dawson respect by showing up to any one of his parties. Even Zachary could be seen at the old man¡¯s event. The Dawsons and the Yorks were on friendly terms. Zachary showed up at Old Mr. Dawson¡¯s business gatheringst year. It was the same event at Wiltspoon Hotel that Serenity attended with Jasmine and Mrs. Lowe when Zachary and Serenity first got married. Zachary¡¯s appearance stirred a hugemotion. Jasmine went to see what the hubbub was all about but failed to squeeze her way into the crowd. Serenity, on the other hand, was hiding in a corner stuffing her face with food. ¡°Go on to your meeting, Duncan. I¡¯ll clean the food containers and leave.¡± Lily reminded Duncan about his meeting. ¡°Sure.¡± Still, Duncan waited until Lily was done washing the containers before walking out of the office with her. With the secretary seeing Lily off at the lift, Duncan turned on his heel and took strides into the meeting room near his office. After leaving Lewis & Co., Lily suddenly hit the brakes when driving past All You Can Eat. She stopped the car by the street and got out to ask someone in the shop next to the diner. ¡°Do you know who¡¯s the owner of this breakfast diner?¡± Lily tenderly asked. The person replied, ¡°Do you mean Liberty? She needs to take care of personal matters in her hometown today, so she¡¯s not open for business. You have toe tomorrow if you want to try her breakfast. Her food is great, and the cleanliness of her ce is top¨Cnotch. It exins why her business is doing well.¡± The neighbors of All You Can Eat had oftene for a meal since the diner opened. Liberty owned the breakfast diner. Despite her shock, Lily did not show the expression on her face. She thanked the person, returned to her car, and drove away. She drove straight to the Lewises¡® residence instead of heading elsewhere. Chapter 1236 Chapter 1236 Chapter 1236 Instead of going out, Mrs. Lewis stayed at home and waited for Lily¡¯s return. She wanted to know if Duncan ate the breakfast Lily delivered. Picking up on the sound of an approaching vehicle, Mrs. Lewis walked out of the house. ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± Lily got out of the car and approached Mrs. Lewis with empty food containers. Judging by the smile on Lily¡¯s smile, Mrs. Lewis could tell that her son ate Lily¡¯s homemade breakfast. The pair strolled back into the house in talk andughter. Handing the food containers to the maid, Lily helped Mrs. Lewis to sit on the sofa. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you stay longer at Duncan¡¯s office?¡± ¡°Duncan has a meetinging up. I didn¡¯t want to take up too much of his time. Mrs. Lewis, I told Duncan that you told me to deliver the breakfast, and he ate it all up. He even asked me if you have a new chef. He thinks well of my cooking.¡± Mrs. Lewis was all smiles as if Lily was about to be her daughter¨Cinw. ¡°You should deliver Duncan packed breakfast more often. See if he needs anything else. With all that you do for him, he¡¯ll be smitten with you in no time. You can do it, Lily. I can¡¯t wait for you to be part of the family.¡± Pulling out her phone, Lily tapped into her photo album and pointed at Jessica before asking, ¡°Who is this woman, Mrs. Lewis? Do you know her? She seems to know Duncan. I saw them talking. ¡°All You Can Eat diner is owned by Liberty. Duncan was going to have his breakfast there, but Liberty was away for personal reasons. Her diner was closed today. He only ate my breakfast because he went to work on an empty stomach.¡± Otherwise, Duncan would not have eaten her food. Lily was confident at first and did not see Liberty as a threat. Mrs. Lewis had warned her that the person to watch was Liberty. Lily thought Duncan would be blind to fall for a fat divorcee with extra baggage like Liberty. Now, she believed Mrs. Lewis had a point. Duncan enjoyed having breakfast at Liberty¡¯s diner. Something might develop between the two as time went by. ¡°I don¡¯t know this woman. I¡¯ve never seen her before. I¡¯ll have her looked up¨Cwho she is and how she came to know Duncan. She seemed to be leaving in a fluster. Duncan must have called her out on something. I wouldn¡¯t be worried about this woman if I were you.¡± Mrs. Lewis was old and a mother to Duncan. She was a better judge of people than Lily. It did not take long for Mrs. Lewis to observe Jessica in the photo before eliminating her. ¡°Is this the street Duncan drives by to the office? If my guess is right, Duncan owns half the street. He bought themercial spaces there and left the management in the hands of his butler. The butler collects the rent. ¡°Liberty once worked at Duncan¡¯spany. She quit when she divorced her husband. I didn¡¯t pay attention to what she was doing after that. I can¡¯t believe she rented amercial space from Duncan to set up an eatery.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Furrowing her brows, Mrs. Lewis added, ¡°I wonder if Duncan collects rent from her. I should ask him. ¡°I told you to keep an eye out for Liberty. The person who can be your rival is Liberty. Out of all the ces she could have built her business, Liberty had to choose to operate on that street¨CDuncan¡¯s route to work. ¡°It¡¯s clear cut what she¡¯s really after. I bet she wants to marry into a rich family after her sister managed to. Well, she should take a look in the mirror. She¡¯s fat and divorced. Plus, she has a son from her previous marriage. She should consider herself lucky if she is able to find another man. How dare she set her sights on my son.¡± Not taking kindly toward Liberty, Mrs. Lewis put whatever me on Liberty. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I think Liberty is not eyeballing Duncan. At least, not at the moment. Let¡¯s not be so quick tobel her as a gold digger. Didn¡¯t Serenity marry Mr. York without knowing who he was? She nearly had a falling out with Mr. York when she found out the truth.¡± Chapter 1237 Chapter 1237 Chapter 1237 Lily carried on talking. ¡°You told me about this. Serenity and Liberty are sisters. Serenity lost her parents at the age of ten, and it was her sister who raised her. Her sister taught her everything she knew. Serenity¡¯s character is the reflection of Liberty¡¯s. ¡°I believe Liberty isn¡¯t that kind of woman. Maybe she¡¯ll be my rival in love, but it won¡¯t be her intention. The problem lies with Duncan.¡± Lily was not a sheltered princess. She held a high position at Harmon Corporation and was well¨C traveled. Her perspective of the world was likely broader than Mrs. Lewis¡¯s. ¡°But now that I know about this, it should be enough warning to keep me on my toes.¡± Lily was lost in her thoughts. She should pull Duncan to her corner before sparks started to ignite between Duncan and Liberty. That way, Duncan would be hers. If¡­ She were to lose to Liberty¡­ Lily stopped her thoughts from wandering further. She refused to imagine a potential loss. She was way superior to Liberty in every way. Duncan would be blind to pick a divorcee like Liberty over her. Liberty, who was back in her hometown with her sister to re¨Csign a contract with the Hunts, could not stop sneezing. ¡°Did you catch a cold, Liberty? Get Dr. Sullivan to look at you when you go outter.¡± Dr. Sullivan was a famous general practitioner around the nearby towns. He had his own clinic. It was the go¨Cto ce for any minor ailment. Serenity and her sister often saw Dr. Sullivan when they were little. ¡°I don¡¯t have the symptoms of a cold, so I don¡¯t think that¡¯s it.¡± Rubbing her ear, Liberty asked her sister, ¡°Do you think my ear is red, Seren? I get a burning sensation. Maybe someone is talking bad about me.¡± Serenity took a look at one side of her sister¡¯s ears. It appeared red. She said, ¡°The customers must be saying something because you aren¡¯t open for business today.¡± The only person who would speak ill of Liberty was Jessica and no one else. The Browns probably would not badmouth the sisters anymore. Feeling her reddish ear, Liberty put the matter behind her. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Further to what was discussed the day before, the sisters signed a new agreement with Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt. The size of the house and vacantnd left behind by Serenity¡¯s parents were measured. Since half of thend belonged to their mother, Lisa, the sisters invited their maternal grandparents over. The Howdens had heard that Serenity and Liberty were back to fight for the property. They were aware that Serenity had married a rich man and reconnected with their aunt. Their aunt was the wife of a wealthy and powerful family too. It was a worry to the Howdens that Serenity mighte after them since they took four hundred thousand dors of the insurance money back then. It was a good thing Serenity did nothing of that sort. No matter what, the Howdens raised Lisa. Despite learning that Serenity married well, the Howdens did not kick up a fuss or try to benefit from Serenity like the Hunts. All they hoped was for Serenity and Liberty not to hold a grudge against them. That was why Serenity¡¯s maternal grandparents were happy to sign Lisa¡¯s share of the inheritance over to the sisters when Serenity sent people to pick them up. As such, Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt had equal shares of the property with Serenity and Liberty. Although the old couple had possession of several hundred square feet, one thing to take into consideration was the different rates between the vacantnd and the built property. Serenity did the math, not taking advantage of Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt¡¯s rights or This time, they had a lot of witnesses at the signing of the agreement. Old Mr. Hunt must have said something to his wife because Old Mrs. Hunt was a lot more pleasant to Serenity and Liberty now. She did not make a scene like thest time. Instead, she was cooperative with signing the contract. Chapter 1238 Chapter 1238 Chapter 1238 Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt needed to be there for the ownership transfer formalities too. Once the procedure was done, and Liberty¡¯s name was on the title deed, Liberty and Serenity then paid the old folks for their share of the property. Serenity wanted to leave her part of the inheritance to Liberty as Liberty was the eldest daughter. Serenity had taken into consideration that her sister had it rougher in life. However, Serenity had not told her sister about it. Now all that was done and out of the way, the mayor said to the sisters, ¡°Liberty, Serenity, are you renting your farnd out? We have someone who wants to contract our fields. I had a meeting with the rest of the townspeople. Everybody is on board. ¡°You¡¯ll get the rent from the contracted fields, and the money will depend on the square footage of your land. The rate per acre will be the same across all. You can leave your number with me if you¡¯re interested. I¡¯ll transfer you the money when we sign the contract and receive the rental money for the land.¡± The person who was contracting everybody¡¯s farnd was Serenity. Nevertheless, Serenity said nothing about it. She uttered with a smile, ¡°Thank you. My sister and I won¡¯t be back to farm thend. It¡¯ll be a waste to leave the field empty. I¡¯m happy to rent it out if someone is keen to develop it. How long will the contract be for?¡± ¡°At least fifteen years,¡± replied the mayor. Serenity recalled the contract she drew up was for twenty years. However, she had not signed the papers with the town council. The mayor still had no idea that her contract was for twenty years. ¡°Sure, no problem.¡± Although Liberty knew about this, she said nothing as her sister was unwilling to tell the mayor the truth. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Serenity told her sister to leave her contact details with the mayor. The money could go to Liberty when the rent for the farnd was received. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. It was Zachary. She went to a corner to pick up her husband¡¯s call. ¡°Babe.¡± She kept her voice down, not wanting others to listen to her intimate conversation with her husband. ¡°I can barely hear you, Seren. Say it loud and proud.¡± A certain somebody was pushing his luck for more. Serenity amusedly asked, ¡°Can¡¯t hear me? There are so many people around. I don¡¯t want them to listen to our conversation. Are you done with your work?¡± ¡°The meeting here just ended, so I wanted to call and ask how things were going on there. Will you be back in time to have lunch with me?¡± Zachary asked his wife over the phone as he fell back against his ck swiveling chair and twirled it. She did not need hispany but it was hard on Zachary because he had not seen her the whole morning. It felt like an eternity since hest saw her. ¡°I promised Mrs. Deli that I¡¯ll have lunch at her ce. She¡¯s cooking as we speak. We won¡¯t make it back for lunch. I¡¯ll make you a few of my specialties tonight. How about we pop open a bottle tonight?¡± Zachary poked fun at her. ¡°One ss will take you out. You¡¯ll sleep the night through. Your sister told me to watch you and stop you from drinking. You don¡¯t want me to tell on you to your sister.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°Don¡¯t threaten me with my sister¡­ I learned to drink a little more after going to events with my aunt. I can handle a couple of drinks now.¡± Chapter 1239 Chapter 1239 Chapter 1239 ¡°Alright, that¡¯s decided then. I enjoy seeing you drunk. You¡¯ll be all over me!¡± Zachary kept his voice down at the end. Serenity was lost for words. The callous man had changed a lot. He could be such a flirt over the phone. ¡°Are things going well? Did they kick up a fuss?¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. The extremes Old Mrs. Hunt would go to had not been forgotten. Zachary was worried Old Mrs. Hunt would cause a scene. Still, there was no cause for concern as Zachary assigned bodyguards to protect Serenity, She brought lawyers, and she could fight. ¡°It¡¯s going well. My granddad must have told my grandmom what his sons and grandson said. My grandmom did not act up this time. She was cooperative. I got my maternal grandparents toe. They said they didn¡¯t want my mom¡¯s share and wanted us to have it.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary had not met the Howdens. The Howdens were cruel for what they did back then. Nevertheless, that fact could be overlooked since they raised Lisa. ¡°My maternal grandparents apologized to us. They said they were unsympathetic for not taking me and Liberty in or standing up for us when my grandparents picked on us. They understood we had it rough over the years.¡± Serenity added, ¡°But I don¡¯t want to sweat the small stuff anymore. No matter what, they raised my mom. ¡°Will that make you think that I¡¯m too forgiving, Zachary?¡± ¡°No. You¡¯re a person of principles. You¡¯re calling me Zachary again.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°Babe.¡± ¡°Come back soon when you¡¯re finished there. I miss you a lot.¡± ¡°We left home together this morning, you know. It¡¯s only been hours.¡± ¡°I would chain you to me if I could. I don¡¯t want to be apart from you for even a second.¡± Feeling butterflies in her stomach from all the sweet nothings, Serenity replied, ¡°I need to bring the forms to thend registry and then I can go home.¡± She then added, ¡°I miss you a lot too.¡± Zachary knew Serenity did not long for him as much as he did for her, but it made him. happy that she could say it out loud. The couple talked on the phone for a while before Serenity ended the call. With the task straightened out, the sisters, together with the bodyguards, went to have lunch at Mrs. Deli¡¯s home. Mrs. Deli and her husband ughtered some poultry and bought a lot of greens to prepare a feast. Lisa was the closest to Mrs. Deli when she was alive. They were somewhat rted too. Mrs. Deli was over the moon that the sisters felt at home at her ce. Serenity and Liberty¡¯s uncles invited the girls over for lunch, but Liberty turned them down. At least, there was no more fighting between them. Still, Liberty and Serenity were not saints to forget about the past and share a meal with their rtives. After lunch, the girls chatted with Mrs. Deli and the other townspeople for a while before going into town to file the paperwork at thend registry during working hours. They then left their hometown. Serenity wanted to give Mrs. Deli some money, but thetter would not have any of it. Mrs. Deli insisted on giving the sisters her homegrown fruits and vegetables. The people sent by Elisa to sign an agreement with the mayors of neighboring towns arrived after Serenity and Liberty were gone. These two matters were done in a day. With the contracts signed, work could be started on Serenity¡¯s and Elisa¡¯s invested project. It was close to evening by the time they got back to the city. Chapter 1240 Chapter 1240 Chapter 1240 ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll go to Zachary¡¯s office and wait for him to get off work.¡± Behind the wheel, Serenity told her sister and turned to ask her nephew, ¡°Do you want toe with me to pick your uncle up, Sonny?¡± Before Sonny could answer, Liberty replied, ¡°Zachary will think of him as a third wheel if you take him.¡± Sonny¡¯s mind immediately flew to his Uncle Zack¡¯sment about him. Shaking his head, Sonny responded, ¡°I don¡¯t want to be a third wheel, Aunt Ser. I¡¯m Sonny.¡± ¡°Of course. Sonny is Sonny. Sonny is not a third wheel. Don¡¯t take your uncle¡¯s words to heart.¡± Liberty jumped in with a smile, ¡°Just drop us at our rental ce. I¡¯m taking him to shop for ingredients for tomorrow.¡± ¡°Alright then.¡± Serenity did not insist. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. She drove her sister and nephew back to their rental apartment and watched them take the elevator upstairs before driving away. Once at York Corporation, she ran into Camryn. Camryn came alone to York Corporation. Supported by her white cane, Camryn carried a bouquet of flowers and slowly took strides into the office building following the guidance of the security guard on duty. Having spotted the woman, Serenity parked the car and took quick paces to her. ¡°Ms. Camryn.¡± Camryn stopped when Serenity called out to her. Turning to the source of the voice, Camryn smiled. ¡°It¡¯s you, Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s me. Who are you delivering the flowers to? Where is your employee?¡± Camryn mentioned that her employees would handle the deliveries while she watched the shop. The delivery was not a convenient job for her since she could not see. ¡°The flowers are for Mr. York; Mr. Callum to be precise. He requested that I make the delivery.¡± Camryn was honest with her answer. Callum told her that he would rmend her services to the Marshalls if she hand- delivered the flowers to him. The Marshalls were having a ball in the Wiltspoon Hotel in two days, and they needed flowers to decorate the event hall. If all went well, the Marshalls would ask the hotel to source the flowers through Spring Blossoms. This was business. Wanting to score the business opportunity, Camryn took the risk and came delivering the flowers to Callum. Serenity puckered her brows. It was Callum¡¯s, funeral; he would regret it sooner orter. ¡°I¡¯ll take you to see Mr. Callum,¡± Serenity kindly offered. Camryn thanked Serenity but rejected the gesture. She said, ¡°Mr. Callum said that I must walk to his office myself. I can¡¯t let anyone take me, but I can ask people for directions.¡± Serenity was speechless. Did the York boys have the tendency to shoot themselves in the foot when courting their wives? ¡°Mrs. York, I must be reaching the entrance, right? The security guard told me it was several hundred feet away. I counted my footsteps. I think I¡¯m about a hundred over feet away from the door.¡± Looking at the office building, Serenity gauged it to be about hundred and fifty feet distance. ¡°Yes. You have around hundred and fifty feet to go. There are steps leading up to the entrance. Take your time on the steps. Once inside, you can walk straight, and the receptionist will ask your purpose for being here. Just tell her that you¡¯re here to deliver flowers to Callum. ¡°About hundred thirty feet after the entrance, turn right to the elevator. I think Callum¡¯s office is on the sixty¨Csixth floor.¡± Serenity let Camryn know the direction. Camryn knew what floor Callum¡¯s office was on as he told her that on the phone. The problem was taking the elevator alone since she was blind. ¡°Once you¡¯re out of the elevator, take a few steps ahead and turn right. Callum¡¯s secretary will take you to his office when you walk further in.¡± Callum was digging his grave to demand Camryn find her way to his office. Serenity was happy to give Callum what he wanted and a chance to be his own worst enemy. Chapter 1241 Chapter 1241 Chapter 1241 Camryn quietly listened to what Serenity said. She had a very good memory, so she remembered everything after Serenity said it once. ¡°Ms. Camryn, can you remember the route I told you about?¡± Serenity asked with concern. Camryn replied warmly, ¡°Thank you, Mrs. York. I can remember it.¡± ¡°Then, I¡¯ll get going now.¡± Serenity had to go up to the top floor to find Zachary. She would be taking a different elevator. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll walk slowly. Mr. Callum said I have to walk by myself and can¡¯t let anyone lead me.¡± Serenity felt that her brother¨Cinw was courting death by causing trouble for Camryn. Camryn thought the same. She did not know when she had offended Callum. Callum wanted to make things difficult for her, so he threw a bait to lure her. The business of her flower shop had been averagetely. Except for that one day when someone came to her store to buy all the roses, there were usually not many people who bought flowers. When Callum suggested that he would rmend the Marshalls buy flowers from her store to decorate the banquet site, Camryn was tempted. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. The ce the Marshalls were holding their banquet, Wiltspoon Hotel, was huge. The people on the guest list were all dignified bigshots in Wiltspoon¡¯s business world, so arge amount of flowers and nts would be needed to decorate the venue. If she could cinch that order, she would earn enough to make it through the month. She would be able to pay the wages of her two workers and still have some money left to spend. That was why even when the conditions proposed by Callum were harsh for a blind person, Camryn agreed. She often bumped into Callum when she went out in the morning, and he always had a way to provoke her into getting into his car and letting him send her to the store. Camryn felt that Callum was not a bad person, but after receiving his request for her to personally send the flowers, she did not understand what he wanted to do. Was he trying to make things hard for her? Or was there another reason? ¡°I¡¯ll go then. Take care. If you don¡¯t remember the directions, then stop and ask someone. They¡¯ll tell you where to go.¡± Serenity went straight to Camryn the moment she got out of her car and talked to Camryn for a long time. Everyone else could see that Camryn was someone whom Mrs. York knew. They would not dare neglect her. Even if the two women did not know each other, the staff of York Corporation would still be kind to Camryn. If they treat visitors with a bad attitude, it would ruin York Corporation¡¯s reputation. The company would not want such uncouth staff. Serenity said a few more words to Camryn before leaving first. When she entered the office building, she told the receptionist to show Camryn the way if thetter needed help. After Serenity left, Camryn calmed down before going forward again. She heard Serenity¡¯s footsteps and remembered which direction to go. She closed the distance of hundred and fifty feet without issue and knew that she reached the entrance of the office building when her white cane touched the steps. She walked very slowly as she went up the steps; it was the easiest ce for her to trip. Fortunately, there were not many steps at the entrance, and she finished climbing them without a hitch. As she stood at the entrance, she listened quietly again and heard footsteps walking toward her. She turned in another direction and determined the way forward. ¡°Hello, Ms. Newman.¡± A receptionist came over and greeted Camryn with a smile. ¡°Hello.¡± Camryn faced the receptionist, who was a little surprised to see her wearing sunsses and holding a white cane like a blind person. However, the receptionist quickly snapped back to her senses. It was no wonder Mrs. York told them to look after her. It turns out that Ms. Newman was blind. Chapter 1242 Chapter 1242 Chapter 1242 Why did the CO0 tell a blind person to send him flowers? The receptionist scolded Callum in her heart but a smile remained on her face. She said to Camryn, ¡°How may I help you, Ms. Newman?¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine, thank you.¡± Camryn remembered the distance between the entrance to the elevator. There was no need to bother the receptionist. ¡°Very well. Please approach us if you need any help, Ms. Newman.¡± The receptionist said with a smile. She watched Camryn hold the bouquet of flowers and slowly walk forward while scanning with her cane. She waited until Camryn was far away before returning to her post. Then, she said to her colleague, ¡°How could the COO ask for a blind woman to send him flowers?¡± ¡°Could he be interested in Ms. Newman? We¡¯ve been working in thepany for two years, but we haven¡¯t seen him interested in any woman before. No young woman has evere to thepany looking for him either.¡± The receptionistughed. ¡°I don¡¯t think so. Maybe he doesn¡¯t know that Ms. Newman is blind.¡± The COO was the second young master of the York family. How could someone of his noble status be interested in a blind woman? However, that was his business. It had nothing to do with them. There was no one in the elevator when Camryn entered it. She fumbled around and touched the numbered buttons, feeling with her fingers for a while before confirming that this elevator was not able to go straight to the sixty¨Csixth floor. She pressed thest number instead. When the elevator took her to her floor, she quickly stepped out. Several people who wanted to ride the elevator happened to be there. Camryn asked them which elevator to take in order to reach the sixty¨Csixth floor directly. When the person saw that Camryn was facing another direction and holding a walking cane while talking to him, he guessed that she was blind. He could not help but wave his hand in front of her eyes. When Camryn did not respond, he confirmed that she could not see. ¡°Follow me. I¡¯ll take you there,¡± the man said kindly. Camryn turned around when she heard the man¡¯s voice. She faced him and followed him. forward. The man led her to another elevator and pressed the open button for her. When she entered, he said to the people inside, ¡°Thisdy wants to go to the sixty¨Csixth floor. She can¡¯t see.¡± Then, someone helped Camryn press the button for the sixty¨Csixth floor and said, ¡°Do you need me to take you to the sixty¨Csixth floor?¡± ¡°Thank you. Does this elevator go straight to the sixty¨Csixth floor?¡± ¡°Yes. The highest it can go to is the sixty¨Cseventh floor.¡± Camryn hummed, thanked the man again, and politely refused to be apanied by him. She was afraid that Callum would be unhappy if he saw someone take her upstairs and refuse to introduce her business to the Marshall family. As the elevator went up, the people inside went out one after another. Soon, Camryn was the only one left in the elevator. She listened to the movement around her quietly. After making sure that there was no one around, she guessed that she was the only one going to the sixty¨Csixth floor. That meant she could exit the next time the elevator door opened. The door opened again in less than two minutes. Camryn quickly went out. Remembering, what Serenity told her, she walked slowly after she got out of the elevator. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Hello, who are you?¡± She stopped when she heard a gentle male voice. ¡°I¡¯m from the florist. Mr. Callum York called my store and asked me to send him a bouquet of flowers.¡± Camryn exined the purpose of her visit and her identity. Chapter 1243 Chapter 1243 Chapter 1243 Callum¡¯s secretary looked at the bouquet Camryn was holding and said warmly, ¡°Please wait a moment. I¡¯ll call and ask Mr. Callum.¡± The secretary had not received the news, so he had to ask Callum for confirmation before. he could let Camryn in to see him. ¡°Of course.¡± Camryn stood there quietly, waiting for the secretary to use the inte to confirm with Callum. Soon, he walked up to her and said warmly, ¡°Pleasee with me.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Camryn thanked the secretary as she followed him. When they came to his office, the secretary knocked on the door and went in first to announce that Camryn had arrived. ¡°Let her in.¡± Callum was still busy, so he responded in a deep voice without raising his head. The secretary invited Camryn to enter the office before retreating. Camryn listened attentively to which direction Callum¡¯s voice resounded from when he talked to the secretary. She walked straight in that direction after entering the office. When she encountered something along the way, she avoided it. Although she walked very slowly, she managed to make her way to Callum¡¯s desk. The reason she was sure she reached his desk was that her walking stick poked Callum¡¯s foot under the desk. She hurriedly retracted the cane. Callum only looked up when his foot was poked by her cane. ¡°Why are you sote? I was just about to leave work.¡± Callumined about Camryn¡¯s tardiness the moment he opened his mouth. Camryn fumbled and leaned the white cane against his desk, then handed the bouquet to Callum and said apologetically, ¡°I can¡¯t see, so I walk slower than normal. That¡¯s why I¡¯mte. This is the bouquet you asked for on the phone.¡± ¡°Tell me. How did youe here?¡± Callum took the flowers and casually ced them on the table. He did not like flowers. He was just looking for an excuse for Camryn toe over. ¡°I had one of my assistants drive me to the entrance of the office building, then I walked. myself in.¡± ¡°No one led you here?¡± ¡°No, I only asked how to get to your office from the entrance.¡± Callum hummed and looked at her for a moment before saying gently, ¡°Have a seat.¡± Huh? Camryn was a little stunned. She thought Callum would let her go back after she delivered the bouquet and received the payment from him. ¡°Since you¡¯re here, sit down for some water.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Callum got up as he spoke and walked around the desk to pour a cup of warm water for Camryn. Camryn felt around for a chair and carefully sat down. She hurriedly thanked Callum when he handed her a cup of warm water. ¡°If I tell you not to let your assistant drive you here, can you take a car to mypany?¡± Callum asked as he returned to his seat. Camryn paused before saying, ¡°Is there a bus that stops in front of yourpany?¡± ¡°There are several buses that pass by the entrance of mypany.¡± ¡°If someone can send me to the bus stop, I can reach yourpany without needing my assistant to drop me off.¡± After staring at her for another moment, Callum pursed his lips and said, ¡°Trying by yourself next time. Tell your employee to stop Bus No. 6 for you. That one can reach mypany.¡± Camyrn was silent for a moment before asking, ¡°Mr. York, did I offend you somehow? Chapter 1244 Chapter 1244 Chapter 1244 ¡°No. We¡¯ve only met a few times. How could you have offended me?¡± Even if she had offended him, he would be tolerant. After all, they would spend the rest of their lives together. He would not hold it against her. ¡°If I haven¡¯t offended you, why did you want me to personally send the flowers over? You also wanted me toe here by myself and not let others lead me.¡± Callum said, ¡°You¡¯ll being here often in the future. I hope you can remember the route you need to take to reach me. Once you¡¯re familiar, it¡¯s easier for you toe over.¡± Camryn was speechless. Why would shee to see him? Plus, why did he say she woulde here often? N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Some of the potted nts in ourpany have died. Maybe they died of radiation because there are too manyputers. I want to help everyone change their potted nts. Callum stopped to look at her. Camryn thought, ¡®What a great business opportunity!¡® ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll take the bus myself next time Ie over. I know where to go after reaching the building entrance since I remember the route. I¡¯lle quicker next time. I won¡¯t keep you waiting.¡± ¡°Mr. York, if yourpany wants to change your potted flowers, you cane to Spring Blossoms. Our store has many potted nts suitable for the office.¡± Callum smiled and said, ¡°Sure. Send over all green potted nts suitable for the office. tomorrow. We want as many as you have. Size doesn¡¯t matter. There¡¯s a small park in front of the office building. You can ce them there.¡± Camryn responded, ¡°Okay. ¡®Mr. York¡­ ¡°Call me Callum. Mr. York sounds awkward.¡± Camryn was a little taken aback, but she soon smiled faintly and uttered, ¡°Mr. Callum.¡± It would not sound as awkward if she used his first name, right? Callum thought about how they had only known each other for a short amount of time. She would find it inappropriate to just address him by his name, so he did not say more and acquiesced to her adding a Mr to his name. ¡°Mr. Callum, about the Marshall family¡­¡± Callum said, ¡°Since you sent the bouquet over as I requested, I¡¯ll keep my promise. I¡¯ll call the hotel managerter and have him send someone to buy flowers from your store.¡± The Marshall family told the hotel to set up the venue on their own. They informed the hotel what they wanted, and the staff would set up the ce ording to their requests. The staff guaranteed that the banquet would be grand and magnificent. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn was happy. She felt that the trip made today was not in vain. She was able to receive tworge orders. Seeing her good mood, Callum was happy too. ¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯ll be going now, Mr. Callum. I won¡¯t disturb your work.¡± Camryn felt for her white cane and held it before standing up to leave. However, she did not forget to remind Callum, ¡°Mr. Callum, you haven¡¯t given me the money for the flowers.¡± Callum did not withhold the payment from her and pulled out two hundred dors from his wallet to hand to her. He told her to wrap a bouquet worth two hundred dors for him. After receiving the money, Camryn ced the cash into her trouser pocket and once again turned to leave. Callum picked up the bouquet of flowers, walked around the desk, and stuffed it into Camryn¡¯s hands. ¡°This is for you. Let¡¯s go out together. It¡¯s time for dinner, so I¡¯ll treat you.¡± Camryn was dumbfounded by his actions. He called and told her to personally send over a bouquet of flowers, which she did. She thought he was giving the bouquet to a girl he fancied. She did not expect him to give it to her so casually. The money for the flowers went into her pocket, and the bouquet returned to her hands too. Chapter 1245 Chapter 1245 Chapter 1245 ¡°Mr. Callum?¡± Camryn called out in bewilderment. ¡°I don¡¯t like flowers, and I don¡¯t have a girlfriend. Telling you to send a bouquet over was just a way for you to get yourself acquainted with the route toe see me. That way, it¡¯ll be easier for you in the future.¡± Callum exined with a smile, ¡°But your silly look is quite funny. Since you amused me, I¡¯ll treat you to dinner. Let¡¯s go.¡± Camryn scolded him in her heart, ¡®You¡¯re the fool!¡® He did not y by the rules. She waspletely bbergasted by him. On the surface, Camryn recovered her calm demeanor and followed Callum out while declining his invitation to dinner. ¡°You¡¯ll just order takeout if you go back anyway. It¡¯s not good to eat takeouts often. If you don¡¯t want me to treat you, then you treat me instead. I gave you two big business opportunities, so it¡¯s natural you treat me to a meal.¡± Camryn choked. After a moment, she said, ¡°I only have a few hundred dors with me. I might not be able to treat you, Mr. Callum.¡± He was from the York family and usually ate at Wiltspoon Hotel. Wiltspoon Hotel belonged to his family, so it was only natural for him to eat there. She had been there before. It was for a dinner before she went blind and she was aware that a meal there would cost at least several hundred dors. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I can lend you the money to treat me.¡± Original from N?velDrama.Org. Camryn was speechless. Callum turned to look at her stunned expression and grinned. ¡°Your choice. Is it your treat or mine?¡± Either way, he wanted her to apany him to dinner. If they got used to each other earlier, they would get along betterter. He could also learn what food she liked. ¡°Actually, there¡¯s no need to order too much food since it¡¯s just the two of us. A main and several side dishes would be enough. It¡¯s not like everything on the menu in Wiltspoon. Hotel is expensive. There are affordable choices too.¡± At those words, Camryn gritted her teeth and said, ¡°It¡¯ll be my treat, Mr. Callum, as thanks. for giving me two big business deals.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± The money she would be paying for the meal was the money he gave her anyway, so he did not mind. They would be husband and wife in the future, and there was no need for a family to draw such clear divides. His belongings were hers, and hers were his; they were each other¡¯s. Callum took Camryn to the elevator and went to the first floor. There, he met his brother and sister¨Cinw. ¡°Callum and Ms. Newman,¡± Serenity greeted them with a smile. She thought Camryn had left. She did not expect her toe down with Callum. Callum was tall and handsome, and Camryn looked petite and delicate standing beside them. As Serenity saw them walking together, she felt that they looked like a good match. ¡°Serenity.¡± ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Callum greeted Serenity back. On the other hand, Camryn addressed Serenity politely. Callum looked at her and wanted to correct her form of address, but he remembered that she was not his wife yet. Thus, she could not call Serenity so familiarly. He had always treated her as his wife and was practicing how to be a good husband to her, but she treated him like a stranger. The person who caused this situation was his darling and respectable nana! Callum remembered that his nana followed Kevin to Jensburg and felt that he was better off than Kevin. Although Camryn had not regained her sight yet and faced many inconveniences in her daily life, at least she was right under his watch. On the other hand, Kevin had to take a flight in order to meet Mr¨CNo, Ms. Queen. His nana still loved him more. Chapter 1246 Chapter 1246 Chapter 1246 ¡°Zachary,¡± Callum greeted. Zachary nced at Camryn and the bouquet of flowers she was holding, then his eyes returned to his younger brother. He sighed faintly, hugged Serenity¡¯s waist, and said, ¡°We¡¯re leaving now.¡± Without waiting for Callum to reply, he left with Serenity in his arms. Serenity turned to look back as she walked. Zachary used his hand to push her face forward and said in a low voice, ¡°I¡¯m more handsome than Callum.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not looking at Callum; I¡¯m looking at Camryn. Wait, why do you sound jealous?¡± ¡°You¡¯re looking at another man. Even if he¡¯s my brother, I¡¯ll still get jealous.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°If we have a son in the future and I treat our son well, will you be jealous of him too?¡± ¡°I won¡¯t get jealous if we have a daughter.¡± ¡°I also want to have a daughter and break your family¡¯s record. Who knows if I¡¯ll have the chance? I¡¯d better prepare for a son. If you¡¯re going to be jealous of your own son, then I hope you¡¯re prepared to be jealous for the rest of your life.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression turned sullen. He seemed very unhappy. He thought, ¡®If we have a baby in the future, and that baby turns out to be a boy, he¡¯ll take away my wife¡¯s attention. Maybe Seren will treat the baby better than she treats me. Should we use birth control for now? I still want to spend time alone with her.¡± ¡°I told Josh to help me find out if there¡¯s a fortune teller to divine the fate of our family. Maybe there¡¯s something preventing the York family from having girls.¡± Zachary still very much wanted a daughter. That was not only his wish, but also the wish of the York family for several generations. ¡°Did you find one?¡± ¡°Not yet. Real diviners are hard to invite even if we can find them, but I¡¯ll find one and ask for their help no matter how much money I have to spend. Let¡¯s see if our generation can conceive a girl.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I heard that fate is also important. If the diviner doesn¡¯t want toe, then we can¡¯t force them. Ask Nana if she knows any fortune tellers.¡± The couple chatted as they walked out of the office building and toward Zachary¡¯s car. The bodyguards brought the car that Serenity drove over back. After getting into the car, Zachary said, ¡°I heard she called a fortune teller over once to Whitmore Mansion, the ce where we spent our New Year. She also invited him to Wildridge Manor when it was first built. ¡°But she said the diviner was already in his seventies when she invited him to Wildridge Manor. I guess he must have already passed by now.¡± Wildridge Manor was built decades ago. Serenity sighed. She liked to listen to pseudoscience. Although she did not understand, it was quite interesting. Even though she was slightly afraid of the paranormal, she still liked to hear about it. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°We¡¯ll just have to take our time to look for one.¡± Serenity said, ¡°At most, we can try again for a girl the second time.¡± Zachary¡¯s palm covered her t belly for a moment before he retracted his hand. He said enviously, ¡°If only we could be like Remy¡¯s brother and sister¨Cinw. His sisters¨Cinw both had twins for their first pregnancies. His second sister¨Cinw had identical twins, and his oldest sister¨Cinw is almost due too.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Having one son is enough to make you jealous. It¡¯ll be worse if we have twin boys.¡± Zachary was speechless. He was hoping they could have fraternal twins, or a pair of identical girls instead. Chapter 1247 Chapter 1247 Chapter 1247 The York family had more boys than the Johnson family in Annenburg. Zachary secretly vowed to find a particrly powerful fortune teller to do a divination for their family. Was there a problem that caused their family to be unable to conceive girls? ¡°Babe, what do you think of Callum and Camryn now? I think Callum is courting death.¡± Serenity changed the topic. She did not want her husband to keep bringing up the mention of having a baby girl and stress her out. ¡°They¡¯re a good match. It¡¯d be better if Ms. Newman regained her sight. What do you mean Callum is courting death?¡± Zachary still did not know what his brother had done. Serenity told him, ¡°He called the flower shop and told Camryn to send him a bouquet of flowers. And he told her not to let anyone lead her and asked her to walk by herself. He¡¯s not considerate at all of the fact that Camryn can¡¯t see. ¡°Isn¡¯t that courting death? I bet he¡¯ll regret his decision every day in the future.¡± Zachary felt a flush rose to his cheeks at the mention of regretting one¡¯s decisions as he too did many things he hade to regret. ¡°It¡¯s his funeral. He doesn¡¯t know how to learn from the example I set for him, I won¡¯t entertain him if he comes to us for help in the future.¡± Serenity looked at him and grinned. Zachary knew what she was smiling at and felt a little annoyed and embarrassed. He pressed her into his arms, pinned her head, and leaned down to seal her mouth so she could notugh at him again. Callum guessed that his brother and sister¨Cinw were talking about him, but he did not care. When they first got married, Callum and his brothers avidly discussed the couple. Everyone wondered if Zachary would be conquered by Serenity. What Callum regretted the most was that he did not make a bet with his brothers. If he did, he would have won. He bet Zachary would fall in love. However, it seemed like all his other brothers also thought Zachary would be conquered by Serenity. s, his oldest brother was not tough enough. If he was, he would be able to go eight to All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ten years without falling in love with Serenity¡­ However, Zachary sumbed in less than half a year! Callum walked out of the office building with Camryn under the gaze of countless employees. Camryn could feel the numerous eyes on her. Fortunately, she remained focused and calmly followed Callum. ¡°Mr. Callum, my shop assistant is still waiting for me outside. I¡¯ll go out and tell her to go back to the store first. Why don¡¯t we meet in front of the building?¡± Camryn could not see everyone¡¯s expressions, but she could imagine what she looked like following Callum with a bouquet of flowers in her arms. The scene could be easily misunderstood. ¡°It¡¯s dinner now, and there are too many people around. You¡¯ll bump into people easily since you can¡¯t see. We¡¯ll leave in my car, and I¡¯ll stop for you to talk to your assistant. Isn¡¯t that much more convenient than you walking out by yourself?¡± Camryn fell silent. She did not want to leave in Callum¡¯s car. After thinking about it, she realized that she would be treating Callum to dinner. She still had to sit in his car after leaving thepany. Thus, Camryn calmed down. A few minutester, Callum saw a girl on a motorcycle staring at the people leaving and entering the building. He guessed the girl was Camryn¡¯s assistant and stopped the car as he reached her. He lowered the window and asked, ¡°Are you the girl working in Spring Blossoms?¡± ¡°Yes, who¨CBoss.¡± The girl saw Camryn sitting in the passenger seat. ¡°You head back to the store first. I¡¯m buying Mr. York dinner.¡± Camryn told the girl to go back to the store first when she heard thetter¡¯s voice. There was no need for her to continue waiting here. The girl was aware that Camryn was sending the flowers over in order to get arge business order. Since Camryn said that she was treating Callum to dinner, it meant that she had sessfully gotten the order. She must be treating him to dinner as repayment. The girl did not think much about it and rode back to the store when Callum drove the car away. Ten minutester, they arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel. Chapter 1248 Chapter 1248 Chapter 1248 Callum booked a private room. After the two sat down at the table, he turned his head to look at the waiter, who immediately handed him the menu. The waiter thought in confusion, ¡®Mr. Callum eats here every day. Why does he need the menu?¡® N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Callum did not care what the waiter was thinking. He opened the menu, read the names of the dishes and the prices to Camryn, and let her order. ¡°You can order whatever you want, Mr. Callum.¡± The meal was Camryn¡¯s treat, so she told him to order what he wanted. ¡°You only brought a few hundred dors. I¡¯m worried the food I order will be too expensive.¡± Camryn was silent before saying, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you could lend me the money?¡± Callumughed. ¡°I did say that, but you look like you don¡¯t want to owe me money. We¡¯ll just order some cheaper dishes.¡± Camryn did not object as she listened to him listing off a few dishes that were not too expensive. The waiter took down the orders and said respectfully, ¡°Please wait a moment.¡± Callum said, ¡°There¡¯s no need to rush. I don¡¯t have nster, so it doesn¡¯t matter if the foodes out slow.¡± Camryn spat in her heart, ¡®You¡¯re not in a rush, but I am.¡± However, she was the host now and could not say such a thing. After the waiter left, Callum asked, ¡°How has business been recently?¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay.¡± ¡°Competition is tough. Where do you get your goods from?¡± Camryn asked, ¡°Why are you asking all this, Mr. Callum? Do you want to open a flower shop?¡± ¡°I was thinking of helping you find a cheaper supplier so you can make a greater profit.¡± ¡°Thank you, but I¡¯ve been working with my supplier for years, and he has always given me the best prices.¡± The supplier gave her the best price after finding out that she was blind. They worked together well for many years, so Camryn had no intention of changing her supplier. Furthermore, she would owe Callum a favor if she epted his offer. He gave her tworge orders, and she was repaying the favor by treating him to a meal. She did not want to owe him another after just returning one. Most importantly, she was not close to him. Even now, she still had not figured out what Callum wanted with her. She was only the eldest daughter of the Newman family in name. Everyone knew she was even worse off than a servant. There was no merit in Callum approaching her. With his status, he did not need to use her to achieve some kind of goal, right? ¡°That¡¯s good.¡± Callum thought of asking the housekeeper in charge of the flowers and nts in the manor to deliver them to her and charge her only a small amount. However, he felt that she would definitely refuse. Since she wanted to remain the same supplier, he did not push it. ¡°Mr. Callum, may I ask you a question?¡± ¡°Sure.¡± ¡°Why do you want to help me?¡± Callum smiled. ¡°Have a guess.¡± Camryn said honestly, ¡°I can¡¯t.¡± ¡°If you can¡¯t guess, then that¡¯s fine. In any case, I won¡¯t harm you.¡± Camryn was silent for a moment and said, ¡°But I don¡¯t want to owe you a favor.¡± They were not rted to one another in any way. He was definitely after something by helping her, but he refused to say, and she could not guess. Camryn did not like this feeling of being in the palm of his hands. Chapter 1249 Chapter 1249 Chapter 1249 Callum did not speak. Camryn remained silent when she did not get an answer. She could feel Callum¡¯s gaze on her. After a while, the waiter served the food. ¡°Let¡¯s eat.¡± Callum finally opened his mouth but did not answer Camryn. Camryn could not see, so he filled her bowl with soup and ced it in front of her. ¡°Have some soup first. I¡¯ll serve you the other dishes when you¡¯re done.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°You¡¯re wee.¡± Callum also served himself a bowl of soup and ate while asionally putting more food on Camryn¡¯s te. Camryn usually ordered fast food where all the side dishes were ced together, so she could just eat slowly. Now that she was eating with Callum, she did not know where the food was. Even when she reached out to stab the food with her fork, she did not know what she would be eating. She could only¡¯ept Callum¡¯s care. If it could be avoided, she never wanted to eat with Callum again in her life. ¡°Do you like shrimp?¡± Callum asked as he finished the soup and ced the bowl down. Without waiting for her answer, he put on a pair of disposable gloves, grabbed a few shrimps to peel off the shells, and dipped them into the sauce before cing them on Camryn¡¯s te. ¡°I deshelled the shrimp and dipped them in the sauce for you. You can eat them straight.¡° If Grandma May were here to see Callum¡¯s actions, she would praise him for being thoughtful. He was much better than Zachary was in the past. Back then, Zachary still needed Grandma May to hint at him. He was proud and unwilling to admit that he cared about Serenity, so he used Sonny as an excuse. Grandma May wanted. to kick him. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn expressed her gratitude. She used to eat shrimp with shells on without the dipping sauce because it was inconvenient. However, she usually did not eat seafood at home. They would not give her the chance to. All they gave her was in pasta. If her stepfather was home, she would get a few meatballs. Her mother said that she was blind and could not see the food she was eating, so it was good enough that she had pasta to eat. At least she would not starve to death. Callum was much nicer to her than her family. Camryn was grateful for his thoughtfulness, but she wondered why he was doing this. It could not be because he fancied her, right? Before she lost her sight, she knew she was very good¨Clooking. Her stepfather said that she took after both her parents¡® best features. She looked like her father and mother at the same time. Carrie was extremely jealous of her good looks. However, with Callum¡¯s status, he should have seen all kinds of beautiful women out there. How could he fancy a blind person like her? Even if¡­ Even if he fancied her now, it was short¨Clived. It was just for the novelty. At that thought, Camryn told herself, ¡®Don¡¯t get captivated by Callum¡¯s momentary thoughtfulness. He will never marry a blind person. He¡¯s just in it for the novelty.¡± Callum did not know that Camryn had built up a wall in her heart to keep him out and make his road to court her even more arduous. After he peeled the shrimp for her, he gave her a drumstick and a fish filet. ¡°I¡¯m a gentleman. I¡¯m not doing this as a favor to you. I¡¯m taking care of you because this was how I was raised. You don¡¯t need to feel indebted to me.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Camryn smiled faintly. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum. Am I really not in your debt if you do this for me?¡± ¡°You¡¯re not.¡± ¡°I¡¯m relieved.¡± If he told her that she was indebted to him and asked her to buy him another meal, she would have words with him. The two enjoyed their meal. When it was time to bill, it was naturally Camryn who paid since it was her treat. ¡°I¡¯ll send you back to your shop, Ms. Newman.¡± Chapter 1250 Chapter 1250 Chapter 1250 Callum took Camryn out of the hotel and said he would send her back to the flower shop. ¡°Thank you, but there¡¯s no need. You can just help me stop a bus that will pass by my shop.¡± Callum thought of how she would have toe out often and take the bus by herself, so he said, ¡°All right. I¡¯ll take you to the bus stop.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Camryn thanked him again. Since she met him, the words she said most often to him were ¡®thank you¡®. Fortunately, Bus No. 6 was arriving just as they walked to the stop. Callum helped Camryn hail the bus and watched her board before turning around to head back to the hotel. He met his loving brother and sister¨Cinw in the small parking lot in front of the hotel again. ¡°Callum, where¡¯s Ms. Newman?¡± Serenity asked right off the bat when she only saw him. without Camryn. She knew that Callum and Camryn ate together ¡°She went back.¡± Callum stopped to answer Serenity and asked Zachary, ¡°Are you sending Serenity back?¡± ¡°Yeah,¡± Zachary answered faintly. Serenity admonished Callum. ¡°Ms. Newman can¡¯t see. It¡¯s not convenient for her to travel. Why didn¡¯t you send her to her store and let her take the bus back by herself?¡± ¡°I walked her to the bus station. She said she didn¡¯t need me to send her back.¡± Serenity and Zachary were speechless. Camryn said she did not need him to send her back, and he actually did just that. Was he not worried that something would happen to her on the way back? Callum guessed his brother and sister¨Cinw¡¯s thoughts and said, ¡°Camryn can¡¯t see, but she can move freely if she¡¯s familiar with her environment. Once she¡¯s used to the route from Spring Blossoms to our office, she cane to find me anytime she misses me.¡± Serenity was at a loss for words. Zacharyughed snidely and mocked his brother, ¡°You might miss her, but she won¡¯t miss. you.¡± Camryn had no idea that Callum was approaching her to try to cultivate their feelings. Callum was already treating Camryn as his wife but in Camryn¡¯s heart, Callum was nothing. at all. ¡°That¡¯s fine. If I miss her but don¡¯t have time to find her, I can just tell her to send over a bouquet of flowers so I can see her¨Clike what I did earlier.¡± Zachary and Serenity were speechless. ¡°Well, whatever floats your boat.¡± Zachary pulled his wife to the car. He could not be bothered with Callum¡¯s private affairs. Callum was the one chasing after his wife now, not him. All he had to do was wait to be invited to the wedding. He was just not too sure whether the wedding could be held in a year¡¯s time. The time limit that Grandma May set for his cousins was one year. Zachary felt like he drew the short end of the stick. His nana did not give him time to woo his wife and made him marry Serenity immediately. Of course, now that the couple was in love, Zachary had noints for his nana. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Babe, let¡¯s go to Spring Blossoms.¡± Callum was not worried about Camryn, but Serenity did. She wanted to go over and see if Camryn returned to the shop safely. ¡°I want to buy some flowers for you,¡± Serenity added. Zachary said indulgently, ¡°Even if you don¡¯t buy flowers for me, I¡¯ll apany you wherever you want to go.¡± Serenity gave him a quick kiss and smiled. ¡°I¡¯m serious about buying you flowers, but if you don¡¯t want it, then¡­¡± Chapter 1251 Chapter 1251 Chapter 1251 ¡°Even if you give me grass, I¡¯ll like it as long as it¡¯s from you.¡± Serenity said yfully, ¡°We¡¯re going to your vi tonight. When we get back, I¡¯ll go to the backyard and cut a handful of grass for you.¡± Zachary pinched her pretty nose indulgently. If she dared give him grass, then he would ept it. He was telling the truth. He would like anything as long as it was from her. On the way to Spring Blossoms, Zachary suddenly said, ¡°Serenity,e with me to a banquet hosted by the Marshalls in a couple of days. The venue is at Wiltspoon Hotel.¡± Serenity looked at him and smiled. ¡°How rare for the great Mr. York to attend a banquet. I heard that Mr. York never joins banquets. They must be very close to the York family if they were able to invite you.¡± Zachary flicked her forehead and corrected her, ¡°The York family is also your family. You¡¯re my wife. In the future, you don¡¯t have to listen to other people. If you have any questions, just ask your man directly. ¡°The host is the Marshall family. Old Mr. Marshall is revered in Wiltspoon¡¯s business world. He holds a business party at Wiltspoon Hotel once a year and invites everyone from the business world in the city to join. ¡°It¡¯s both an exchange and an opportunity for smallpanies tond big business deals that they otherwise wouldn¡¯t have the chance to. The Marshall and York families have known each other for a long time and have a close rtionship. ¡°They are involved in a wide range of businesses in Wiltspoon, but the family keeps a low profile. The York family stands at the forefront and deflected a lot of attention that would otherwise go to the Marshalls. The wife of the current head of the Marshall family is bosom friends with my mom. ¡°Do you rememberst year when the Marshalls held a banquet in October when we just got married? Ms. Sox and you attended with Mrs. Lowe. You also told me about some gossip when you came home after the banquet.¡± Zachary leaned into Serenity¡¯s ear and lowered his voice to utter, ¡°Back then, you said I was either gay or couldn¡¯t get it up. Now, you know what I¡¯m like, right?¡± Serenity quickly pushed him away. At that time, she did not know that her husband was the heir of the York family. She heard. everyone gossip about him and felt that he was not normal, so she casually said a few words to her husband. Unexpectedly, he still remembered what she said. It was no wonder he acted like a wolf every time since they became a real couple. It was to prove that he was nothing but capable. ¡°The banquet is in two days?¡± Serenity asked. ¡°Yeah, Sunday night.¡± It was Saturday tomorrow. She said, ¡°Most people choose to hold banquets on Fridays or Saturdays so they can rest the next day. Why did the Marshalls opt for Sunday night to host their banquet?¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°The purpose of business parties is to talk about business. If they discuss a deal on Sunday night, they¡¯ll be able to take action the next day when they go back to work. Isn¡¯t that better? You can also pull in some business for the project you and Elisa had just started. ¡°You said you don¡¯t need my help, so I¡¯ll let you handle the talks. I¡¯ll just watch from the side.¡± She refused his help, so he would not lend a hand and just watch by the sidelines. If she needed his assistance, all she had to do was say the word and he would step in immediately. ¡°Oh, right. Will Elisa be joining too?¡± Zachary thought for a moment before saying, ¡°In the past, Clive wouldn¡¯t turn up early if I appeared at Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s banquet. He¡¯ll only show up when I leave. We don¡¯t see eye- to¨Ceye, so it¡¯ll be troublesome for the Marshalls if we get into a conflict. ¡°That¡¯s why Clive and I never attend at the same time. When other families host banquets, they¡¯ll invite me or Clive, but never both of us. It¡¯s to prevent us from meeting.¡± Serenity paused before saying, ¡°I¡¯ve never seen you two fighting before¡­¡± Original from N?velDrama.Org. Maybe it was because she had not really set foot in the business world. Even if she did, her investment project was different from the ones that York Corporation and Stone Group did, so she still would not understand. ¡°Now, for your sake, our fights won¡¯t turn out too ugly.¡± Zachary took her by the shoulder and pressed her head against his shoulder. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll value the people you care about.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Serenity hugged him back, feeling touched. ¡°Jasmine and Mr. Bucham¡¯s engagement party should be in March. I¡¯ll be attending a lot of banquets this month. Many people are getting married after the new year.¡± Chapter 1252 Chapter 1252 Chapter 1252 Serenity went to her hometown today to handle the issue of the house. She had not asked Jasmine about the date of her engagement yet. However, Zachary already knew. He told her, ¡°Ms. Sox and Josh¡¯s engagement is on 20th of March. It¡¯s already mid¨CMarch. now, so it¡¯ll be happening soon. Their engagement party will most likely be a grand event since the Bucham family isrge and they have many friends.¡± Even people who were not close to the Bucham family would send gifts out of respect. After all, many people used the Buchams¡® intelligence services before. ¡°Their wedding will also be before ours.¡± Zachary continued, ¡°Their wedding might be before or after the 1st of May. Josh said they were getting their marriage license right after the engagement. He¡¯s in a rush.¡± Serenity and Zachary got their marriage license first, so they could choose a good day for the wedding later. They were not in a hurry. However, Josh and Jasmine were doing it the traditional way, so Josh was naturally anxious. Serenity smiled in understanding. As the couple conversed, they soon arrived at Spring Blossoms. ¡°You don¡¯t have to follow us, Jim,¡± Serenity said. When Zachary and she got out of the car and entered the store, they found that Camryn was not back yet. Serenity asked the shop assistant to wrap a bouquet of flowers for her husband while waiting for Camryn to return. Camryn came back just as the assistant finished wrapping the bouquet. ¡°Ms. Newman,¡± Serenity called out to her. Camryn heard Serenity¡¯s voice and immediately smiled out of habit. ¡°Mrs. York. I sensed many people outside my store and was wondering why.¡± It was because Serenity was here. Mr. York was most likely here too. ¡°They didn¡¯t get out of the car. How did you sense them?¡± Camryn smiled and said, ¡°They were looking at me, so I could feel their gazes.¡± Serenity smiled back. The girl was really careful. ¡°Are you here to buy flowers, Mrs. York?¡± ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m buying them for my husband.¡± Serenity looked at the bouquet Camryn was holding and smiled vaguely. Camryn calmly ced her bouquet on the counter and asked her assistant if she had finished wrapping the bouquet for Serenity. ¡°Yes, it¡¯s done.¡± Camryn hummed in acknowledgment. After Serenity asked for the price of the bouquet, Camryn replied, ¡°Mrs. York, I¡¯ll give you a discount. Just give me two hundred bucks.¡± ¡°Ms. Newman, it¡¯s not easy for you to run a business. There¡¯s no need to give me a discount. I¡¯ll pay the full price.¡± Serenity had more than enough money and declined Camryn¡¯s kind gesture. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Camryn wanted to give Serenity her change, but thetter refused. Thus, Camryn had no choice but to ept the money. Then, she gave Serenity a small potted nt. Serenity epted the gift lest Camryn felt guilty. Chapter 1253 Chapter 1253 Chapter 1253 Zachary was present too. He was still haughty and cold in the eyes of outsiders, and he had an imposing aura that made everyone in the flower shop feel uneasy. Serenity did not linger and pulled Zachary out of the shop after giving him the bouquet. The sky darkened soon after they left Spring Blossoms. Serenity called her sister and chatted with her nephew for a while before hanging up. Sonny waited until his aunt ended the call as he wanted to y with the phone, but unfortunately, his mother took it away. ¡°Mom, I want to watch Peppa Pig.¡± Liberty tucked the phone back into her pocket and said, ¡°If you want to watch cartoons, I¡¯ll turn on the TV for you. You can¡¯t watch it on the phone. ¡°You can only watch TV for half an hour.¡± Sonny pouted. When he saw his mother hold the TV remote control and turn on the TV, he compromised and said, ¡°Okay.¡± After turning on the TV for her son, Liberty went back into the kitchen to prepare the ingredients for tomorrow morning. The doorbell suddenly rang. ¡°I¡¯ll get it, Mom.¡± Sonny called out to his mother when he heard the doorbell and carried a small stool to reach the doorknob. Liberty let him open the door. However, she still came out of the kitchen to see who came over while still holding onto the kitchen knife. When the door opened and she saw Hank and Jessica standing in front of the house, Liberty¡¯s expression turned cold. Hank, who was happy to see that it was his son who opened the door, wanted to pick Sonny up. However, when he saw his ex¨Cwife standing behind his son with a shiny kitchen. knife, he said somewhat guiltily, ¡°Liberty, I¡­ We¡¯re here to see Sonny and g¨Cgive you an invitation.¡± The house renovation was halfway through. He asked the contractor for thepletion date and finalized the date for his wedding with Jessica. Jessica excitedly told him to get someone to make the invitation cards, then forced him toe together to send one to Liberty. Hank knew very well that his ex¨Cwife no longer loved him, but he still expected Liberty to feel bitter when she received the invitation. After all, they had known each other for more than a decade, dated for many years, and got married for a few years. Did Liberty really not care that he was getting married to another woman? ¡°Liberty, we brought some food for you and Sonny, as well as some toys for him. I also bought a few sets of clothes for him.¡± Jessica¡¯s attitude was very pleasant. She wanted to prod for information from Liberty. Did Zachary find out the mastermind behind the zoo incident? ¡°Dad,¡± Sonny called out to Hank. The little guy turned to look at his mother, then finally reached out to let Hank pick him up. Liberty bent down to pick up the small stool, turned around to walk back into the house, and said coldly, ¡°Come in.¡± Only then did Hank and Jessica dare enter. ¡°Sonny, did you miss Daddy?¡± Hank asked his son. ¡°I didn¡¯t miss Dad.¡± Sonny was an honest child. He did not miss his father, so he spoke the truth. Hank was speechless. ¡°How can you not miss me? I¡¯m so sad. Then, who do you miss?¡± ¡°Dunc.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Hank¡¯s face fell. Did Duncan steal his son¡¯s heart away already? Hank was displeased and asked his son, ¡°Why do you miss Dunc?¡± Sonny said honestly, ¡°Dunc gave me some Legos. I couldn¡¯t piece them together, and Mom doesn¡¯t know how to either, but Dunc does. I want to y with Dunc.¡± He wanted Duncan to teach him how to assemble the building blocks. Chapter 1254 Chapter 1254 Chapter 1254 N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°What blocks did he give to you? Let me see. I¡¯ll help you put them together.¡± Sonny immediately slid down from his father¡¯s arms, ran to a shelf that was filled with toys, and took out a box of Legos he had not been able to assemble. Hank saw the set of blocks and cursed Duncan for being sinister in his heart. Sonny was still young. He was not even three yet. Even if he was smart, how could he be able to put together something that difficult? Duncan deliberately gave Sonny a challenging set of Legos so he could have the opportunity to teach Sonny and get closer to Liberty, right? How shameless! He was using Sonny to get close to Liberty! Hank cursed Duncan a million times in his heart. Liberty invited the couple to sit down, poured them each a cup of warm water, and said, ¡± I¡¯m busy. Just leave the invitation there. If I have time that day, I¡¯ll bring Sonny and attend your wedding.¡± Since they were not worried that she would ruin the wedding and invited her, she would join. What was she afraid of? Of course, she would not ruin their wedding. Only people who were unreconciled would try to ruin someone else¡¯s wedding. She had nothing to be upset about. In fact, she was d that she divorced Hank. Jessica could enjoy what it was like to have the Brown family as her inws. Liberty dared say that Jessica would regret it. Not many women could endure inws like Olivia and Chelsea. Furthermore, everyone knew that Jessica was a homewrecker. If she did not marry Hank, it would be hard for her to marry a good man. Besides, Jessica always viewed Hank and Liberty¡¯s divorce as if she was the winner, so if she did not marry Hank, she was not victorious. ¡°What are you doing, Liberty?¡± Jessica put on a smile and asked, ¡°Is there anything I can help you with?¡± ¡°No need.¡± Liberty refused her help. Jessica shamelessly followed Liberty into the kitchen and saw her meal prepping. ¡°Liberty, your store wasn¡¯t opened when I went there this morning. Did something happen?¡± Jessica asked. Liberty did not even look at her. ¡°That¡¯s none of your business.¡± Jessica choked. After a long time, she asked tentatively, ¡°Liberty, does Mr. York have any news about those kidnappers? I asked the police, but they said they couldn¡¯t find the kidnappers. I still get weak in the knees when I think about that day. Thank goodness Sonny is all right.¡± Liberty looked at her. ¡°Leave this matter to the police. They¡¯ll update us if they find anything.¡± Even Hank, the father, only called to ask if Sonny had nightmares after the incident. He went to Serenity to thank her, but he did not ask about anything else. On the other hand, the stepmother, Jessica, was concerned about the follow¨Cup. Liberty was unconvinced that Jessica had no ulterior motive. The Brown family was trying to regain custody of Sonny, and Jessica knew that she could not run from being a stepmother. Was her concern for Sonny an act for the Brown family to see? That woman was so arrogant back then. She and Hank had not even held their wedding yet. Did she already give up on having a child of her own? Jessica said, ¡°Mr. Bucham¡¯s specialty is in gathering information. I thought they¡¯d be more capable than the police and could find the kidnappers first. Maybe they could find and arrest the kidnappers before the police.¡± Liberty continued to tenderize the meat and remain silent. Even if she had information, she would not tell Jessica. She did not give up custody of Sonny before, and she would not give it up in the future either! Chapter 1255 Chapter 1255 Chapter 1255 Liberty could not be bothered less with Jessica. Jessica could not get any useful news, so she had no choice but to return to Hank¡¯s side bitterly. At the same time, she looked around the ce. Although the space was notrge, Liberty tidied it up and decorated it in a cozy manner. Jessica had to admit that Liberty was much better than her at housekeeping. Hank was teaching Sonny how to piece up the building blocks since he seldom apanied his son. When he looked at the pile of scattered blocks and the assembly instructions, he found that it really was difficult to build. He would never have the patience to construct something like this. ¡°Do you really know how to build that?¡± Jessica asked him. ¡°Why don¡¯t you give it a try?¡± Hank was having a headache and snapped at his wife when he heard her. Sonny looked up at Jessica, then at his father, and asked an innocent and pure question, ¡± Dad, why is she always following you?¡± Hank was speechless. Before he could answer, Jessica deliberately said gently, ¡°Sonny, I¡¯m your dad¡¯s wife. You can call me Mom too.¡± ¡°I have a mom. You¡¯re not my mom!¡± Sonny immediately refuted Jessica angrily. Liberty heard Jessica and came out of the kitchen. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mom!¡± Sonny got up and ran to Liberty to hug her legs. He looked up and said anxiously, ¡°Mom, you¡¯re my mommy. She¡¯s not my mom!¡± Liberty carried her son and said coldly to Jessica, ¡°Ms. Yates, it¡¯s enough for Sonny to have me as his mother. He doesn¡¯t need you as his stepmother. Mr. Brown, please leave with your wife.¡± Hank looked at his ex¨Cwife and son in embarrassment. Jessica said, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m Sonny¡¯s stepmom. A stepmother is also a mother. Did I say anything wrong? Sonny is Hank¡¯s son, and I¡¯m Hank¡¯s wife. It¡¯s normal for me to say that we¡¯re a family.¡± ¡°Jessica!¡± Hank shouted in a low voice and pulled his wife¡¯s hand, then said to Liberty, ¡°We¡¯ll leave now.¡± He dragged Liberty out in a hurry. He was afraid that Jessica and Liberty would get into a fight. He mmed the door shut. After the obnoxious couple left, Liberty carried her son to the sofa and exined, ¡°Sonny, Mom and Dad have divorced, and your dad got married again. That Yates woman is indeed your dad¡¯s wife¡­ She¡¯s your stepmother. ¡°However, you don¡¯t need to call her mom. I¡¯m your only mother.¡± Sonny did not know what divorce was, so he did not understand what his mother was talking about¡­ but one thing was for sure, he knew that he only had one mother! His mom said that because of the divorce, they could not live with his dad anymore. Sonny seemed to understand bits and pieces of the situation. ¡°Mom, why did you divorce Dad?¡± Liberty stroked her son¡¯s head and said gently, ¡°It¡¯s an adult thing. You¡¯re still young, so you won¡¯t understand. You don¡¯t have to ask either. All you have to know is that Mom and Dad will still be your Mom and Dad. Nothing will change that.¡± Sonny seemed to understand. ¡°Go on and y on your own for a while, Sonny. Mom needs to work, okay?¡± Sonny nodded. ¡°Okay.¡± Seeing the building blocks scattered around, Liberty helped her son clean up and said, ¡°If you can¡¯t assemble these blocks, put them away for now. You can try piecing them together when you¡¯re older.¡± ¡°Dunc ising tomorrow. I¡¯ll ask Dunc to teach me.¡± Chapter 1256 Chapter 1256 Chapter 1256 His dad was not able to piece together the blocks earlier. Sonny felt that Duncan was more amazing. It was the first time he missed Duncan. If Duncan knew that Sonny missed him so much, he would feel incredibly ttered Liberty looked through the clothes and toys that Hank bought for Sonny, then let him open them up and y with them. She went back to the kitchen to work, but she kept thinking about Jessica¡¯s attitude. It was impossible for Jessica to like Sonny because he was Liberty¡¯s son. Jessica¡¯s expression always turned hideous whenever she heard that the Brown family wanted to visit Sonny. Why did Jessica¡¯s attitude change recently? Not only did she not stop the Brown family from visiting Sonny, but she would also apany Hank when he came over. Furthermore, she bought new clothes for Sonny. That was a bit odd. Jessica might be trying to create a bond with Sonny because the Brown family was trying to regain custody of him. However, she could wait until after the Brown family got custody before trying to build a rtionship with Sonny. She also asked whether Zachary found any news regarding the mastermind of the incident at the zoo. Liberty would not be suspicious if it was Hank asking since Hank was Sonny¡¯s father. The more Liberty thought about it, the more suspicious she felt. She stopped tenderizing the meat, washed her hands, and took out her phone to call Zachary. Zachary quickly answered the call from his sister¨Cinw. ¡°Liberty.¡± His voice was low. If his sister¨Cinw was calling him straight instead of going through Serenity, it meant there was something urgent. His expression was solemn. ¡°Zachary, are you busy now? Am I disturbing you?¡± ¡°No, Seren and I have gone home, and I don¡¯t have a gathering tonight. What¡¯s wrong?¡± After hearing that he was not busy, Liberty told him about the odd feeling she had. ¡°Zachary, I think Jessica is a little strange. Do you think she was the one who nned the kidnapping incident? Does she want to take Sonny away and sell him so that her child in the future will be the only one carrying the Brown lineage?¡± Liberty suspected Jessica, but she would only think that Jessica¡¯s motive was selfish and malicious. She would not have guessed that Jessica was coerced by someone or that it was another party who wanted to deal with Serenity. ¡°Is Jessica pregnant?¡± Zachary asked in a low voice, ¡°If you put it that way, it does seem like she¡¯s acting odd. How was she acting the day the incident happened? Did you pay attention?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t notice. I was stunned at that time and didn¡¯t see her reaction, but I remember that she didn¡¯t say anything from the beginning to the end. Serenity told me that Jessica didn¡¯t go with the Browns to thank her.¡± Chelsea was a vile sister¨Cinw. It was understandable for Jessica not to want to apany her inws to thank Serenity. Jessica might appear normal when there was no suspicion on her, but once they started to question her actions, it seemed like everything she did was abnormal. ¡°I¡¯ll have someone investigate her and find out if she met anyone before or after the incident.¡± ¡°Okay, tell me if you find anything.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. ¡°Sure.¡± If they found something, Zachary would definitely tell his sister¨Cinw. They were too focused on Mr. Newman and his wife. Suspecting Jessica did not cross their minds at all. Jessica did not have the capability to carry out such a n, but it was possible for her to have an aplice. On the day they went to the zoo, the Brown family and Liberty went their own ways and explored at their own pace. However, Jessica insisted on waiting for Liberty and the others to watch the show at the aquarium. That was worth looking into. Chapter 1257 Chapter 1257 Chapter 1257 After the call, Zachary immediately contacted Josh and told him about Liberty¡¯s suspicion. Josh said, ¡°I just received some news too, and was about to tell you when you called me.¡± Zachary asked in a low voice, ¡°What news? Is it rted to Sonny¡¯s attempted kidnapping?¡± ¡°Yeah. My brother told me that he found out that Mrs. Newman had a gang leader as a godfather more than twenty years ago. However, that leader got arrested and sentenced to death. Some of the leader¡¯s men were also convicted, but some disappeared from the face of the earth. ¡°I suspect they were taken in by Mrs. Newman. Those men under the leader back then were all ruthless ouws. It was arge gang too. If Mrs. Newman took them in and made them into bodyguards, their numbers could form argepany. ¡°That happened twenty years ago, so it¡¯s difficult to find out their whereabouts. It¡¯ll take some time to get confirmation. Besides, those men are probably old now after twenty years, but they might have inducted new blood. ¡°Mrs. Newman was the goddaughter of that gang leader, so the men working under him treated her like he was her real daughter. If Mrs. Newman had the courage to take them in, they would swear loyalty to her. They would follow her to hell and back.¡± Zachary said in a low voice, ¡°Our suspicions were mostly on Mr. and Mrs. Newman. After listening to what you said, I¡¯m ny percent sure the incident was nned by Mrs. Newman. Ms. Carrie is still in detention, and Seren also sued her. She¡¯ll be sentenced ording to the evidence submitted by Seren. ¡°Mrs. Newman has always doted on Ms. Carrie, who is the apple of her husband¡¯s and her eyes. They spoil her more than they spoil their son. She¡¯s taking revenge on Seren for her daughter¨Cit¡¯s a pretty obvious motive.¡± Josh said, ¡°I think so too, but you mentioned Hank¡¯s mistress¡­ We can¡¯t rule her out. Maybe Mrs. Newman teamed up with that homewrecker. She¡¯s already Hank¡¯s wife, so it¡¯s convenient for her to follow the Brown family and keep close to Sonny. She¡¯ll also be able to reveal Sonny¡¯s whereabouts. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ll have someone investigate that woman. What was her name again?¡± ¡°Jessica Yates.¡± ¡°Okay, I got it. I¡¯ll get someone to dig into her right away.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t let her find out, and don¡¯t alert the enemy. We have to maintain the status quo on the surface so the mastermind thinks we¡¯re unable to discover the truth. If we treat this incident as an ident, maybe they¡¯ll let down their guard or try to carry out another n.¡± Zachary thought that if there was evidence, he wouldy out a to lure the other party into a trap. Then, he would use the to catch everyone. That was the best oue. ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry when I¡¯m handling it.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°Yes, I never have to worry when it¡¯s you. Congrattions on your sessful proposal.¡± ¡°Thanks. You muste to my engagement party.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Of course. We¡¯re basically brothers.¡± ¡°Jasmine and my wedding must be before yours. I asked my mom to choose a day before May Day so I can finally hold my beautiful wife as soon as possible.¡± It was already mid¨CMarch now. May Day was only about a month from now. ¡°By the way, Jasmine and I are going on a honeymoon after the wedding. Give me two months¡® leave.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t a honeymoon usually only one month? You want to leave for two months?¡± Zachary felt that two months was too long. He would have a hard time without Josh in thepany. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Josh said righteously, ¡°We¡¯ll be newlyweds who can¡¯t get enough of each other. I won¡¯t be in the mood to work. I¡¯m afraid that my working will cost thepany losses, so I want a honeymoon period of two months. If you think my holiday is too long, you can deduct it from my annual leave.¡± Zachary replied reluctantly, ¡°Fine, go on your two¨Cmonth honeymoon. You can keep your annual leave for the holidays. Over the years, you¡¯ve made the greatest contribution to York Corporation. It¡¯s only natural that I grant you two months¡® leave since you¡¯re getting married.¡± Josh was not just his assistant in thepany but also helped him with many things in private. Chapter 1258 Chapter 1258 Chapter 1258 Case in point, he just asked Josh to investigate Jessica. He could not afford to offend Josh. ¡°Thanks in advance. You¡¯re really a good boss who¡¯s considerate of your subordinates.¡± Josh ttered Zachary. Zacharyughed. ¡°Enough already. I don¡¯t know you. Just go on your date and soak in the honey jar all day. Be careful not to get diabetes from all the sweetness.¡± ¡°You also soak in your honey jar all day, but I don¡¯t see you getting diabetes. I just started, so I have nothing to be afraid of. I¡¯m going on my date now. My Jasmine likes BBQ, so I¡¯m taking her out to eat BBQ.¡± Josh hung up the phone. He and Jasmine often went out to eat barbecue. ¡°Babe, do you want some jackfruit?¡± Serenity opened up a jackfruit, ced the flesh on a te, and asked Zachary while walking toward him. Zachary turned pale at the smell of the jackfruit. He immediately stood up and walked away. ¡°Honey, I don¡¯t like the smell of jackfruit. You can eat slowly over there.¡± Serenity stopped in her tracks. ¡°You don¡¯t like jackfruit? Then, I¡¯ll eat it myself. Actually, it tastes quite delicious once you get used to it. I didn¡¯t like the taste at first, but I quite like it now.¡± She had not bought jackfruit since she married Zachary, so she did not know that her man did not like jackfruit. ¡°It stinks.¡± Jackfruit was a hit or miss¨Csomeone either loved it or otherwise would think it was stinky. Serenity did not force him and sat far away. She ate while asking him, ¡°What did my sister say when she called you just now?¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. She heard him call Liberty¡¯s name. ¡°She suspects that Jessica might know the group who tried to grab Sonny, which means that Jessica nned the incident, or she teamed up with someone else.¡± Serenity looked at her husband who was sitting far away. ¡°Jessica?¡± ¡°Yeah, I told Josh to investigate her. I¡¯ll tell you when I get news. Seren, my sense of smell is very strong. I can¡¯t stand the stench. I¡¯m going out in the night breeze for fresh air Zachary got up and started heading out. Serenity could not help butugh. Was it that stinky? Her mouth would taste like jackfruit after eating it, so he would not share a room with her tonight. He would sleep in the study by himself. Jessica did not know that her big mouth during her visit to deliver their wedding invitation raised Liberty¡¯s suspicion of her. After Hank pulled her out of the Liberty¡¯s home, she flung away his hand with an unpleasant expression and turned to leave. Hank followed her and coaxed her. ¡°Honey, we¡¯re still young and haven¡¯t even had our wedding yet. We¡¯ll definitely have children of our own in the future. Don¡¯t tell Sonny that you¡¯re his mother. Liberty won¡¯t like hearing that.¡± Hank added while walking, ¡°Sonny is young, but he¡¯s already three years old. He knows that you¡¯re not his mom.¡± Chapter 1259 Chapter 1259 Chapter 1259 ¡°Although a stepmother is also a mother, Sonny won¡¯t call you Mom. Saying something like that will only upset everyone.¡± Jessica ignored him. She went straight to the car after leaving Liberty¡¯s apartment block. Hank got into the car. ¡°How about I take you shopping, honey?¡± ¡°Then drive already,¡± Jessica snapped. ¡°I said all those things for you. I know your family and you want Sonny back. If you want to take custody of Sonny, he¡¯ll be living with us in the future. I¡¯m just trying to adapt to the role of being a mother in advance.¡± Hank said while driving, ¡°My parents want Sonny back very much. They couldn¡¯t bear to part with Sonny from the beginning. They¡¯re old, and Sonny is the only Brown grandson, so of course they miss him. However, I don¡¯t intend to regain custody of Sonny.¡± He looked into Jessica¡¯s eyes and said, ¡°Back then, it was you who persuaded me to give up custody. I feel that it¡¯s good for Sonny to follow Liberty. The people around Liberty now are on a different level from us. ¡°If Sonny is with her, he can see his aunt every day. Serenity treats Sonny like her own. It¡¯s good for Sonny¡¯s future if he has an aunt who married into an affluent family. Even though I didn¡¯t raise him much, I¡¯m still his father and care about his future very much.¡± With his parents¡® personalities, they would definitely try to keep Sonny away from Liberty and her sister if they took him back. If that happened, Serenity would hesitate to help her nephew. It would indirectly affect Sonny¡¯s future. Hank would not do such a thing. ¡°Jessica, you¡¯re just too stressed now. After the wedding, we¡¯ll go on a honeymoon and have a good time. Maybe you¡¯ll get pregnant.¡± Jessica¡¯s heart was bitter. She was not worried about not getting pregnant. She was worried about her own family. She was afraid the unknown woman would go after her family after seeing that she failed her task. However, Jessica did not dare tell Hank. If Hank knew that she had joined hands with an outsider to kidnap Sonny, he would Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. strangle her to death. Her inws would not spare her either. ¡°I just really like Sonny and want to bond with him as a mother and son.¡± Hank looked at her again and smiled. ¡°Okay, okay, you like Sonny. My son is adorable, so it¡¯s natural for you to like him. Let¡¯s talk about something else. I¡¯ll take you shopping to buy some new clothes.¡± He had not given her a gift for a long time after they got their marriage license. That night, he took her shopping to recapture the sweetness of their love, the way it was in the past. The couple shopped the night away. Hank bought his wife several new clothes and went to a jewelry store to buy a gold ne as well. Only then did they go home happily. Hank¡¯s generosity pleased Jessica However, when she came home and pushed open the door to see her sister¨Cinw sitting shamelessly on the sofa watching TV, her expression instantly soured. She tried to go straight into the bedroom while carrying her bags. ¡°Stop.¡± Chelsea told her husband to bring Lucas home. Lucas had to go to preschool and could not stay in the city for a long time, but Chelsea continued to freeload at her brother¡¯s ce. Her purpose was to target Jessica. Chapter 1260 Chapter 1260 Chapter 1260 Chelsea swore to herself that she would never let Jessica live a happy life while she was around! Jessica stopped, turned her head, and asked coldly, ¡°What?¡± Chelsea put down the TV remote control, got up, and walked over. She nced at the numerous bags in Jessica¡¯s hands. ¡°What did you buy? There are so many bags. Spending money is the only thing you know. Hank and you are both unemployed and have no source of ie now. Don¡¯t you know how to be frugal? ¡°Now, everything you eat and usees from Hank¡¯s pocket. You worked for so long but can¡¯t bear to spend your own money, but you always spend Hank¡¯s money. Do you think his money grows on trees?¡± Chelsea criticized Jessica for not knowing how to save money while forcefully seizing the bags from Jessica¡¯s hands. ¡°Chelsea, what are you doing?¡± Hank asked. Chelsea red at him and snapped, ¡°Can¡¯t I have a look? Move aside. She saw me when she came in but didn¡¯t bother greeting me at all. You spoiled her so much that she has no respect for others. ¡°Hank, you can¡¯t spoil women like her. She¡¯ll let it go to her head if you spoil her. You¡¯ll regret it in the future.¡± Chelsea scolded her brother while opening the bags to see what was inside. When she took out Jessica¡¯s newly bought set of clothes and saw the brand, her expression turned even uglier. She shook the clothes and used Jessica, ¡°Do you think you¡¯re still eighteen? You¡¯re a married woman. Why are you buying such bright¨Ccolored clothes? Who are you going to wear them for? ¡°Do you want to look for another golden goose because my brother is unemployed and doesn¡¯t have an ie now? A homewrecker like you has no shame, no honor, and no morals. You¡¯d be anyone¡¯s bride as long as they have money for you to spend.¡± Jessica trembled in anger. Her sister¨Cinw was the shameless one here. She tried to snatch her clothes back forcefully, but Chelsea refused to let go and demanded, ¡°These clothes are my size. Give them to me.¡± ¡°Chelsea Brown, how shameless are you?¡± Jessica tugged hard but only managed to snatch a pair of pants back. She was so angry that she cursed Chelsea for being shameless. ¡°These are the new clothes my husband bought for me. If you want new clothes, go to your own husband! You called me shameless? Take a look at yourself! You¡¯re the most shameless person in this world! ¡°Do you think you can bully me like you did Liberty? Give me my clothes back or don¡¯t me me for being rude. This house is mine now, not yours. I can chase you out anytime!¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Chelsea clung to clothes she snatched and refused to let go. She would not give them back even if Hank asked for them. She said arrogantly, ¡°Hank is my brother. We¡¯re siblings for the rest of our lives, but who do you think you are? Don¡¯t you know that wives can be changed? What¡¯s wrong with me wearing clothes that Hank bought? Hank, I¡¯ll be taking these clothes!¡± ¡°Chelsea!¡± Hank was also exasperated by his sister¡¯s scoundrelly behavior. ¡°Also, this house isn¡¯t yours. My brother pays the rent, so it¡¯s his. My parents also stay here, which means this is my maiden home. What right do you have to throw me out? Do you think you¡¯re thedy of the house because you and Hank got married? ¡°I¡¯m telling you, thedy in charge of this family is my mom. That role can¡¯t be filled by a homewrecker like you.¡± Chelsea kept mentioning the word ¡°homewrecker¡°, poking Jessica¡¯s sore spot. Back then, it was clearly Hank who courted her first. She simply epted his pursuit. She was notpletely at fault. What right did Chelsea have to scold her like this? ¡°Get the hell out!¡± Jessica was furious and pounced on Chelsea. She grabbed and pulled Chelsea, wanting to drive her sister¨Cinw out. Chapter 1261 Chapter 1261 Chapter 1261 ¡°Wouldn¡¯t it be humiliating for me if I left just because you told me to? This isn¡¯t your house. Are you paying the rent? If you are, I¡¯ll go out immediately and nevere back.¡± Chelsea did not back down. Jessica was young and used to sitting in an office. She had not much strength and simply could not compete with Chelsea. Seeing that it was impossible to drive Chelsea out, Jessica turned and shouted angrily at her husband, ¡°Hank Brown, can¡¯t you see your sister is bullying me? Why aren¡¯t you helping me to kick her out? I¡¯m telling you now, between me and her, only one of us can stay in this house!¡± ¡°Chelsea. Jessica. Will you two just stop arguing? You might not get tired of fighting all day, but I¡¯m sick of it.¡± Hank was fed up with this state. He had no peace at home. As soon as he got home, it was either his mother or sister quarreling with his wife¨Cnot a single day of peace. Smack! Jessica was so angry that she pped Hank. Hank was stunned by the p. He clutched his cheek and stared at her in astonishment. ¡°I was really blind to think that I¡¯d be happy after marrying you! You don¡¯t know how to protect me even when your sister and mother bully me! I didn¡¯t want you to pay so much for the bridal gift, so I stole my documents to get a marriage license with you, but this is how you repay me?¡± Jessica beat her husband, but she felt more aggrieved than he did. Tears kept streaming down her face. What kind of family was this? What kind of husband was this? N?velDrama.Org is the owner. At first, Hank would help her when her inws targeted her. However, as time went on, he slowly sided with his parents and sister. Well, in Hank¡¯s eyes, his parents and sister were his family. His wife was just an outsider who could not integrate into the Brown family! At that moment, Jessica envied Liberty. Liberty divorced so easily and ended her misery. Jessica thought that she could dominate her inws. Yes, she refused to be taken advantage of, but her inws were relentless as well, especially her sister¨Cinw. She had never seen such a vile sister¨Cinw. Chelsea had been married for almost two decades, but she was still interfering in her maiden family¡¯s affairs. ¡°You b*tch, how dare you hit my brother when I can¡¯t even bear to hit him. I¡¯ll get even with you!¡± Chelsea shrieked and swooped over to p Jessica twice. Jessica was caught off guard and pped twice by her sister¨Cinw. She only felt burning pain on both sides of her face. She was so furious that she lost all her rationality and tore into Chelsea. Hank hurriedly tried to pull them apart. Mr. and Mrs. Brown, who had gone to sleep, were awakened by the noise in the living area. The old couple woke up to see their daughter and daughter¨Cinw fighting, and their son failing to pull them apart. On the contrary, their son¡¯s actions caused their daughter to be at a disadvantage. The couple instinctively rushed to help Chelsea. Before Liberty filed for divorce, the Brown family turned a blind eye to Hank and Jessica¡¯s affair. No one stood on Liberty¡¯s side. In fact, they felt that Hank waspetent to pursue a woman like Jessica. The Browns were exceptionally kind to Jessica the first time she went to their house. Jessica even told Hank that she could not understand why Liberty could not get along with his family. In her opinion, the Brown family was pleasant to get along with. Now, she regretted it. She followed in Liberty¡¯s footsteps and waspletely blind. She was blind to have married Hank. She was blind to think that the Brown family was easy to get along with. This family was the best at pretending. They were also the most shameless when it came to conflicts. Jessica lost. She lost miserably. After her inws helped Chelsea, her face was beaten ck and blue, and her clothes were torn by Chelsea. If Hank had not dragged her into the room and closed the door, Jessica felt like she would have been killed in this domestic violence. ¡°Just keep protecting her, Hank. She had the audacity to hit you, yet you¡¯re still protecting her. Liberty would never treat you like that in the past.¡± Chelsea was still swearing at the door. Chapter 1262 Chapter 1262 Chapter 1262 N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Hank yelled behind the door, ¡°Shut up and go home, Chelsea! Don¡¯te here anymore. You¡¯ll just cause trouble!¡± Liberty was even more ruthless when she fought against his domestic violence. She chased him down several blocks with a kitchen knife. Did Chelsea forget that? Chelsea, who was scolded by her brother, yelled back furiously, ¡°Yes, I¡¯m a troublemaker. I just don¡¯t like that b*tch. My parents are here, so this is my home too. What has that got to do with her? I can come here whenever I want. It¡¯s not like I¡¯m eating out of her pocket or sleeping under her roof. If she¡¯s capable, tell her to pay for her own house. I promise I won¡¯t take a single step into her house!¡± She wanted to make Jessica¡¯s life a living hell! Jessicay on the ground and cried bitterly. Except for the time when she was caught red¨Chanded by Liberty and beaten up, she had never been so pathetic before. She was physically and mentally hurt and felt extremely aggrieved. Hank looked at her crying and felt both heartbroken and annoyed. He thought Jessica was gentle, considerate, and understanding. Furthermore, she was young and beautiful. He thought they would be blissful if he married her. Unexpectedly, the family turned into a mess after Jessica married him. When he looked at Jessica now, he did not find her pretty, gentle, considerate, or kind. She became calcting and petty and did not get along with his family for his sake. She could not even stand it when his nephew came over. Furthermore, Jessica did not cook or do housework. She was not as diligent as Liberty. After a long time, Hank crouched and lifted his wife, before assisting her to sit on the bed. He fixed her messy hair and said gently, ¡°Stop crying, honey. Our home will be done with renovation soon. Once the house and wedding are over, we¡¯ll move in and let my parents go back to their house.¡± ¡°Hank¡­¡± Jessica burrowed into his arms and cried bitterly. She wanted a divorce! However, she could not get one yet. *252 If she divorced, she would have no reason to get close to Sonny. Her family was still being watched. If that unknown woman got upset, her family would be in trouble. Jessica was terrified. More than that, she was regretful. If she had not interfered in Hank and Liberty¡¯s marriage, she would not be involved in this and implicated her parents, brothers, and sisters¨Cinw. Maybe this was her retribution. It was retribution for her meddling in someone else¡¯s marriage and being a homewrecker. ¡°I¡¯m at fault. I was wrong,¡± Hank embraced her and murmured. Jessica did not dare divorce now for the sake of her family. Hank was even more scared than she was to get a divorce. He had already divorced once. If he divorced again, he was afraid he would not be able to get another wife because his reputation was not good. He used to be the brother¨Cinw of Mr. York, but he betrayed his marriage and divorced Liberty. Who knew how many people were waiting to see him make a fool of himself and live unhappily? He could not divorce again! Otherwise, everyone wouldugh at him. They wouldugh and say that he deserved it and that it was his retribution! It was karma! Happy New Year! Open your presents!>> Chapter 1263 Chapter 1263 Chapter 1263 Liberty did not care that her ex¨Chusband was not living a good life after their divorce. All that mattered was that she was happy. At four in the morning, she woke her son up and brought him to All You Can Eat. Another busy day began. Sonny was still small and fell asleep along the way. When they reached the store, Liberty put two chairs together to let her son sleep on them, and a few more chairs on his sides to prevent him from rolling over and falling to the ground. The two assistants she hired came to work at six in the morning. Usually, the breakfast rush hour would be from half¨Cpast six to half¨Cpast nine. Serenity woulde to pick up her nephew at seven. Sonny would be awake by that time. The little man was such a good boy and did not cry after waking up. He sat by himself at the cashier, ying with the set of blocks that he had not assembled yet. ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity called out to her sister as she entered. She lent a hand when she saw it was a full house at the diner. ¡°Did Zachary go to work?¡± Serenity hummed and quickly grabbed a bowl for a customer. ¡°Liberty, has Sonny eaten?¡± Liberty said, ¡°Not yet. I was going to make him some pancakes, but we ran out of batter. Serenity, help me prepare another batch.¡± She only made pancakes when there were orders for them, but she would prepare the batter in advance. Serenity hummed. Duncan entered at that moment. ¡°Liberty, Serenity.¡± Duncan came in and greeted them, then looked around the store and smiled. ¡°There are no empty seats.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, do you want to pack the food and bring it to eat in the office? Or you could wait for a table.¡± Duncan said, ¡°I¡¯m not in a rush. I¡¯ll wait.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Then, he walked to Sonny. ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny was ted to see Duncan. Duncan was ttered by the little boy¡¯s glee. ¡°Hey, Sonny.¡± When Duncan saw that Sonny was happy, he reached out to carry the boy. However, Sonny said, ¡°Dunc, help me put together the blocks. I don¡¯t know how to piece them. My dad doesn¡¯t know either.¡± Duncan withdrew his hands. He went around the counter to pick him up instead and sat on a chair before cing Sonny on hisp. ¡°Your dad? When did your dade?¡± Hank could not stand it when his son mentioned Duncan, and likewise for Duncan. His nerves could not help but tense up when he heard Sonny bring up Hank. Sonny said, ¡°Dad came overst night. He bought me clothes, snacks, and toys. I asked. him to help me piece the blocks, but he couldn¡¯t do it.¡± Duncan¡¯s dark eyes flickered at those words. Did Hank learn how to coax his son now? In the past, Hank was only willing to pay half the amount of the baby form Liberty bought for Sonny. ¡°Your dad is too dumb and doesn¡¯t know how to y with Lego. I¡¯ll teach you.¡± Duncan spoke warmly as he held Sonny and taught the little one how to assemble the stic bricks. He asked softly, ¡°Did your dad say anything to your mom when he came over?¡± ¡°Dad gave her a card. Dunc, let me tell you something.¡± Sonny spoke in a hushed tone. After ncing at Liberty twice and making sure that she was not looking at him, he whispered to Dunc, ¡°My mom said that she and my dad are divorced.¡± Duncan nodded. ¡°Yes, your parents are divorced, and your dad remarried.¡± Chapter 1264 Chapter 1264 Chapter 1264 Sonny recalled Jessica¡¯s and his mom¡¯s exnation, but he still could not fully understand the meaning of his mom¡¯s words. He tilted his head and asked, ¡°Dunc, are you married?¡± ¡°No, I don¡¯t have a spouse, so I¡¯m not married.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you have a spouse?¡± ¡°Because I don¡¯t have a woman I like.¡± Sonny blinked and asked curiously, ¡°You don¡¯t like my mom? Also, my Aunt Ser and Aunt Elisa are very nice. Don¡¯t you like them too?¡± Duncan was speechless. 1 He said in amusement, ¡°Your Aunt Ser is very nice, but she already has your Uncle Zack. I can¡¯t like your Aunt Ser. Your Aunt Elisa is also very good, but I don¡¯t like her that way. She¡¯s not my type. ¡°As for your mom¡­ I only think of her as my friend. Ie over every day because Nike you.¡± Sonny seemed to vaguely understand the part where Duncan said he liked him. He asked instinctively, ¡°Do you want to marry me?¡± Duncan froze. ¡°Sonny, we¡¯re both boys, so we can¡¯t get married. Although I don¡¯t have a girlfriend yet, I¡¯m a straight man and only like women.¡± ¡°But you said you liked me.¡± ¡°The way I like you is different from the way I like women.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t it the same? Why do you like me but not want to marry me?¡± Duncan was speechless. When faced with an innocent child who only had a hundred and one questions, Duncan found himself at a loss for words. He did not know how to exin it to Sonny. ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re still small. Let¡¯s discuss this when you¡¯re older, okay? Come on, I¡¯ll teach you how to piece the bricks.¡± He changed the subject. Duncan made a mental note to himself¨Cbe careful with what was said to Sonny so he would not trap himself like he just did. ¡°Sonny,e have breakfast.¡± Serenity came over with a te of pancakes and ced it on the counter, smiling, ¡°Do you want me to feed you?¡± ¡°Go help your sister, Serenity. I¡¯ll feed Sonny.¡± ¡°Sorry for the trouble, Mr. Lewis.¡± ¡°It¡¯s no trouble as long as Sonny is willing to let me feed him.¡± However, Sonny refused to be fed by Duncan and wanted to eat by himself. His mom said that she would send him to preschool in September, and that he would have to eat by himself in preschool. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯d like some pancakes too. I¡¯ll sit here and eat with Sonny.¡± Duncan saw that there were still many customers in the store, so he asked Serenity to make him a te of pancakes for him to eat with Sonny. ¡°Coming right up.¡± Serenity turned around and went to make pancakes for Duncan. The business in the breakfast diner was booming; even Mrs. York was helping out. Meanwhile, Duncan sat at the cashier¡¯s desk digging into breakfast with Sonny. They looked like father and son. This scene was witnessed by Lily and Mrs. Lewis. They deliberately got up early to wait nearby for Duncan¡¯s appearance and to confirm what was going on between him and Liberty. As they watched the scene inside through the open ss door, Lily¡¯s expression was fine, but Mrs. Lewis looked incredibly displeased. Judging by how familiar Liberty¡¯s son was with Duncan, she knew that the two met often. Without her knowledge, Liberty and her son had gotten close to Duncan. Mrs. Lewis was tempted to go inside. However, she resisted. Seeing that Duncan was about toe out, Lily hurriedly drove the car away. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Lily, go to the officeter to find Duncan. It doesn¡¯t matter if you use business or private matters as an excuse. You have to hold onto him. Don¡¯t let any random woman on the streets have the opportunity to steal him away,¡± Mrs. Lewis instructed Chapter 1265 Chapter 1265 Chapter 1265 ¡°You don¡¯t need to care about Liberty, nor do you have to find her since it¡¯ll make you appear as having no confidence. I¡¯ll handle her. I¡¯m Duncan¡¯s mother. It¡¯s normal that I can¡¯t ept a divorcee as my daughter¨Cinw.¡± Mrs. Lewis was afraid that Lily would go looking for trouble with Liberty and anger Duncan, causing him to dislike her. She added, ¡°From now on, just focus on pursuing Duncan. I¡¯ll take care of Liberty for you. ¡°I¡¯m Duncan¡¯s mom. No matter what, Duncan won¡¯t fight with me.¡± Lily said while driving, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, are you going to look for Liberty now? I think Duncan just treats her son well. He didn¡¯t seem to pay much attention to Liberty. Maybe we¡¯re overthinking. ¡°Maybe Duncan simply likes Liberty¡¯s son? I also saw what the boy looked like. He looks smart and is utterly adorable. There¡¯s also nothing strange about Liberty renting Duncan¡¯s store to open a breakfast diner. As long as she pays the rent, she¡¯s just a tenant. ¡°Furthermore, Liberty is Mr. York¡¯s sister¨Cinw, and Mr. York and Duncan are good friends. Maybe Duncan is just looking after her for Mr. York¡¯s sake.¡± Lily was cautious about Liberty, but she was not as impulsive as Mrs. Lewis who could not wait to go up to Liberty and tell her to stay away from Duncan. ¡°You¡¯re too nice, Lily. It¡¯s best if Duncan and Liberty haven¡¯t started anything. I¡¯ll inquire about Liberty lest she tries to have any funny ideas. You don¡¯t have to worry. I know what to do.¡± Mrs. Lewis took out her phone and took a picture of Lily. ¡°Why are you taking a picture of me?¡± Mrs. Lewis smiled. ¡°Because I¡¯ll be using it, of course. Find a studio to print these photos out. Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t harm you. Later, just drop me off at All You Can Eat, then you can head to Lewis & Co. to find Duncan.¡± Lily hummed and epted Mrs. Lewis¡¯s arrangement. When the store had only a few customers remaining, and her son leaving, as well as after Serenity departed with Sonny, only then Mrs. Lewis walked into All You Can Eat. The diner was not big, but it was brightly decorated. Liberty and her two workers were diligent and cleaned up the store so that it was neat and tidy. The environment was very important for a restaurant. If a customer came in and saw good hygiene, they would be willing to stay to eat. If the hygiene was poor, guests would turn around and walk out. Liberty met Mrs. Lewis at a business banquet before. She had just finished eating breakfast when she saw Mrs. Lewis entering. She quickly put down her spoon and walked toward the woman. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lewis did not bother to look Liberty in the eye during the banquet, but she behaved well this time and smiled at her. ¡°I was going to the office to find Duncan, but I saw you here and decided toe in. ¡°I heard from your aunt that you started your own business. Did you open this breakfast diner?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked warmly, ¡°How is business?¡± Liberty invited Mrs. Lewis to sit down and was just about to pour her a cup of water when the woman stopped her. ¡°There¡¯s no need for that, Liberty. I¡¯m not thirsty. I just came in to have a look.¡± ¡°Have you eaten, Mrs. Lewis?¡± Mrs. Lewis hummed. Liberty knew that Mrs. Lewis was very picky. Since Mrs. Lewis said that she had eaten, Liberty did not cook breakfast for her. ¡°Business isn¡¯t bad. There arepanies and factories nearby, so the staffe here for breakfast before they go to work. After the morning rush, those who finished graveyard shifts would then dine here.¡± Liberty smiled and told Mrs. Lewis about how the store was doing. Mrs. Lewis nodded. ¡°You have a good eye for deciding to open a breakfast diner here, but it¡¯s also thanks to your cooking skills. Otherwise, business wouldn¡¯t be flourishing. There are also many eateries on this street.¡± Thepetition was fierce, so the owners had to rely on their skills. Liberty said modestly, ¡°I just make simple dishes. I¡¯m satisfied if business is good.¡± ¡°How much is the monthly rent for this store?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked seemingly casually. Chapter 1266 Chapter 1266 Chapter 1266 Liberty answered sincerely, ¡°It¡¯s Mr. Lewis¡¯s lot and he said that he was going to charge me a cheaper rate since I am Zachary¡¯s sister¨Cinw. We settled on eight thousand a month for the rental and if you add the utilities and all that, then ites down to just shy of ten thousand.¡± Mrs. Lewis was relieved to hear that her son had charged Liberty a proper rental¨Cat least he was not giving the shop away as an act of charity. Considering Liberty¡¯s rtionship with Zachary, charging her eight thousand per month for rental was a reasonable and fair price. ¡°That brat is taking your money? You¡¯re Mr. York¡¯s sister¨Cinw, he should have the decency to let you use the lot without charging you a rental,¡± Mrs. Lewis said this intentionally to elicit Liberty¡¯s reaction. Liberty quickly exined, ¡°At the end of the day, business is business and I don¡¯t think personal rtions should y a part in it. I would not dare use the shop lot if he was not going to charge me rent at all.¡± ¡°So he took the rental fee willingly when you gave it to him?¡± ¡°Yeah, I paid him cashst month. He counted it right in front of me to make sure that everything was in order before leaving. As for this month¡¯s rental, he instructed me to give the rent to his butler.¡± Upon hearing this, Mrs. Lewis wondered if her concerns were unwarranted. If the boy did have feelings for Liberty, he probably would not have charged her rental in the first ce. ¡°That child¡­ Well, at least there¡¯s a lot of peopleing and going around these parts of town so I¡¯m sure your business can profit even after paying the rent.¡± She suddenly added, ¡± Speaking of which, where¡¯s your son?¡± ¡°Seren took Sonny to her ce.¡± Mrs. Lewis hummed. The mutual affection and support between the Hunts sisters was certainly something to admire. ¡°It must be very tiring to run a business. You¡¯ve lost a lot of weight from what I can see.¡± Mrs. Lewis eyed Liberty from head to toe as she said this. She observed that Liberty seemed considerably skinnier than when she first met her. She had to admit that Liberty looked much betterpared to her past self. The main reason for her giow¨Cup was the vibrant energy she exuded. She had turned into a greatly motivated and confident woman. Based on her observation, Mrs. Lewis figured that it only made sense that her youngest son would catch feelings for Liberty as she was apletely different woman these days. Her son had always been fond of confident women who embraced their identity¨Cjust like Lily. She thought that if she let her son spend more time with Lily, he would gradually develop feelings for Lily. ¡°It is a little exhausting, but I¡¯m very disciplined and make sure I get my exercise in every day and watch my diet; that¡¯s how I lost weight gradually. To be honest, I haven¡¯t reached my weight loss target yet as I want to go down to a hundred pounds. So I still have about thirty pounds to shave off.¡± Running the shop had demanded more of her energy but she persevered on her weight- loss journey nheless. Her efforts were paying off since she found herself losing weight faster than ever. She weighed a hundred and thirty pounds now. She just had to stick it out a little longer and she would reach her goal. ¡°Take it easy, it¡¯s nice to keep a little weight around, you¡¯ll age slower that way.¡± Liberty remarked, ¡°Based on my height, a hundred pounds is more or less an ideal weight.¡± She had been far too skinny before marriage. Perhaps Mrs. Lewis had a point, especially considering she was in her thirties now, she should be wise to start taking some anti¨Caging measures. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s phone suddenly rang. When she reached for the phone in her pocket, a picture slipped out and fluttered to the ground. Liberty picked it up for her instinctively and noticed the person in the picture. It was a young, charming, and beautifuldy. Chapter 1267 Chapter 1267 Chapter 1267 ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± After Liberty nced at the picture, she handed it back to Mrs. Lewis. After taking the photo, Mrs. Lewis asked Liberty with a warm smile, ¡°Liberty, what do you think of this girl?¡± She made a point of observing Liberty¡¯s expression to see how she would respond. Liberty gave her opinion candidly, ¡°She looks beautiful and inspires a lot of confidence. I¡¯d say she¡¯s a very capable and independent woman, very trustworthy.¡± Mrs. Lewis noted the calm demeanor in which Liberty answered and said, ¡°You¡¯re very good at reading people, aren¡¯t you? I would agree that Lily here is an independent woman. After graduating from university, she joined her family¡¯spany and started from the foundation, keeping her identity a secret the entire time. ¡°She climbed the ranks and is now the vice president of thepany. It was only after she had been promoted to the top rung of thepany that people found out that she was the chairman¡¯s daughter and the younger sister of the president. She is a true prodigy and a daughter of a good friend of mine.¡± After giving a brief introduction of Lily, Mrs. Lewis asked nonchntly, ¡°I¡¯m nning to match her with my son, Duncan. Tell me, Liberty, do you think those two make a good pair?¡± Liberty continued speaking her mind rather frankly, ¡°Based on their respective background, it does sound like they would make a good match. I think it¡¯s a good idea since they could coborate in the workce. As for looks, even though Duncan has had that ident, it should be fine once he has his scar fixed. He would look good next to Lily.¡± ¡°I think he would like Lily as well.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Duncan had built up everything he had single¨Chandedly. He would appreciate a self¨Cmade and independent woman. Based on Mrs. Lewis¡¯s descriptions, it seemed to Liberty that Duncan would like this girl named Lily. She thought it was rather intriguing that Mrs. Lewis was trying to match Duncan with thedy. Mrs. Lewis noticed that Liberty had expressed her opinion with sincerity and made no attempts to conceal her thoughts. She was very natural the entire way through and it would appear that she had spoken her mind. With that, she concluded that Liberty was not interested in Duncan! Mrs. Lewis had a rather low opinion of Liberty and refused to ever consider the prospect of her son being together with Liberty. She maintained this opinion even though she had been steadily losing weight and regaining her previous charms. On top of that, she was building her business and was on track for sess. If she kept this up, she was going to start raking in profit ande out a sessful businesswoman. Even so, Mrs. Lewis did not respect Liberty¡¯s ungainly background. She was a divorced woman. burdened with a child¨Csomeone like her was not worthy of her son. Nevertheless, she found it hard to acknowledge that Liberty had not developed feelings for her son, not even in the slightest. She thought about Liberty¡¯s failed marriage. It had only been several months since her divorce and her situation seemed like it was trending upward atst. With this provided context, it would make perfect sense that another rtionship was thest thing on Liberty¡¯s mind and that she had better things to pursue at the moment. She came here intending to give Liberty a hard time, but her attempt ended up being not very fruitful. She found herself somewhat at a loss. ¡°I do think they make a good match as well, the problem is Duncan is always telling me how he¡¯s too busy with work and doesn¡¯t seem very receptive to my suggestion of him spending time with. Lily. It¡¯s very troubling for me. He¡¯s already thirty¨Csix, so he can¡¯t be said to be young and springy anymore. How am I, as his parent, not supposed to worry about his future?¡± Mrs. Lewis expressed with an exasperated sigh. Liberty conveyed her sympathy and advised, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, there¡¯s no way to rush these matters, and it¡¯s even worse to try to force it. For now, let Lily spend more time with Mr. Lewis and develop their rtionship naturally. Things will progress faster eventually.¡± Mrs. Lewis spoke suddenly, ¡°Lily¡¯s family name is Harmon, she¡¯s not from Wiltspoon but she came here to survey the market and get some investments underway. Their family is trying to expand their business by starting some small¨Cscale businesses. ¡°I do think there are many opportunities for those two to see each other going forward, especially since Lily has several projects she¡¯s interested in and ns to work with Duncan. I don¡¯t know how things are progressing and frankly, I¡¯m not concerned about the business side of things. I just hope Duncan spends more time with her.¡± Chapter 1268 Chapter 1268 Chapter 1268 After Mrs. Lewis said this, she asked Liberty, ¡°Liberty, how often do you see Duncan? He¡¯s good buddies with your brother¨Cinw so I figured you see him from time to time. If you have the chance, please help me persuade and convince him to see Lily, alright?¡± Liberty smiled and assured her, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯d be d to help you out. Mr. Lewis is a wonderful person and I do see him now and then, but I¡¯m not sure if I could influence him that much. ¡°Hees to my ce for breakfast most mornings and likes to y with my son. Next time hees over, I¡¯ll try to put in a good word for Lily and sway him to see her more often. ¡°But I just have to tell you that there¡¯s no guarantee, especially since our rtionship for the most part is just that of a shop owner and a tenant. If you as his mother could not do much to sway him, I don¡¯t think my words would have a much greater effect either.¡± Mrs. Lewis considered this and said, ¡°You make a good point. Still, if he shows up for breakfast tomorrow, have a quick chat with him and try to bring up Lily¡¯s name. See what he thinks about her. ¡°I¡¯m going to take Lily to Wiltspoon Hotel tomorrow, to attend the Marshalls banquet tomorrow night, I was hoping Duncan would join us.¡± Duncan was going to attend the banquet as well, except he was going to attend by himself. He was not bringing a partner with him nor attending with his mother. After all, he wasrgely a lone wolf out there and was rather detached from his family. Most people saw him and his family as separate entities. Liberty sympathized with how Mrs. Lewis was concerned about her son¡¯s future. She decided she would do Mrs. Lewis a favor, especially considering the olddy¡¯s rtionship with her sister¡¯s family and her aunt. However, she knew better than to assure Mrs. Lewis that she could convince Duncan to attend the Marshalls¡® banquet. She doubted she had that much influence over the man. That was strictly between the pair of mother and son. Around this point, a group of night¨Cshift workers who had ended their shifts showed up to have breakfast. Mrs. Lewis promptly stuffed Lily¡¯s picture into her bag and rose to bid a curt farewell,¡± Liberty, I¡¯ll stop taking your time. You have a business to manage.¡± Liberty thoughtfully walked Mrs. Lewis to the entrance, smiling the entire time, ¡°Be careful on your way home, Mrs. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lewis waved goodbye to Liberty and approached a car. She opened the door and burrowed inside before the car drove away in no time. Liberty returned to the store to see to her customers after the car had driven off into the distance. It was Lily who came to pick up Mrs. Lewis. Things did not go smoothly with Duncan and there was still ack of progress even at this point. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Charte Since Duncan was busy with work and had endless rounds of meetings every day, she only got to spend several minutes in his office before the secretary approached to inform her that Duncan had another meeting to attend. Duncan apologized curtly to her and informed her to set up an appointment with his secretary if she wanted to further discuss the uing investments. That way, she would not end up wasting her time by making a fruitless trip to his office. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, how have you been doing?¡± Lily greeted kindly. ¡°Liberty doesn¡¯t fancy Duncan, does she? Did you tell her to back off?¡± Mrs. Lewis expressed with a sigh, ¡°No, it doesn¡¯t seem like it. I intentionally slipped your picture out of my pocket so she could see it before telling her I was nning to match you with Duncan. Her reaction seemed very genuine and it doesn¡¯t seem like she has any ulterior motives. ¡°I¡¯d say it¡¯s safe to say that she¡¯s not hatching any ideas about Duncan, at least not for now.¡± Chapter 1269 Chapter 1269 Chapter 1269 Lily steered the wheel while remarking, ¡°Which is why I said that the Hunt sisters have very good characters. Considering how Liberty¡¯s marriage had just fallen through, I doubt she would be looking for a new rtionship so soon. ¡°The only thing she¡¯s focused on now is starting her business and making money. Another marriage has probably never even crossed her mind yet.¡± People who had experienced a failed marriage tend to be more vignt when it came to founding a new rtionship with another. Since her mind was fixed on building a foundation for her business, romantic affairs should not concern her in the least. Mrs. Lewis stated, ¡°If she dares to hatch any ideas about Duncan, I¡¯ll be the one chasing her out of the shop lot first. Don¡¯t even think about setting up her restaurant at our property. It doesn¡¯t seem like she¡¯s up to anything now but I still feel strangely suspicious about her, like something¡¯s going to happen between her and Duncanter on.¡± ¡°You can deal with it when it happens, too much precaution can be a bad thing sometimes. Besides, you have to factor in that she¡¯s not all alone. Her sister is thedy of the York household so Liberty has the entire York family backing her. You¡¯ve seen how Tania is so protective of Serenity even when she is not very fond of her.¡± Mrs. Lewis agreed with Lily¡¯s sentiments. ¡°The Yorks have a close rtionship with my family as well, so I certainly cannot brashly shove Liberty out the door just because I wanted to. Otherwise, I¡¯ll risk offending the Yorks. Also, Liberty¡¯s aunt, Mrs. Stone, is not someone I want to mess with.¡± Originally, Mrs. Lewis wanted to dissuade her son from renting the shop lot to Liberty for her diner as a means to keep their interaction at a bare minimum. That way, she could rest her worries about a rtionship sparking between the two. The way things were now, she woulde off as rather unreasonable for doing so. Pulling off such a stunt would also anger the Yorks as well as the Stones. It might be quite unnecessary as well since it did not seem like Liberty was interested in Duncan. It was simply not worth it. However, it might be toote to spring to action only after something happened between Duncan and Liberty. As a mother, Mrs. Lewis was well informed of Duncan¡¯s personality. He would not rashlymit to a rtionship, but once he did, you could assume that he was committed for life. They stayed quiet for a while before Lily broke the silence, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, let¡¯s forget about trying to chase Liberty out. It¡¯s not exactly easy for her to start a business as a newly¨Cdivorced woman. Besides, business seems good right now, and I wouldn¡¯t want to get in the way of a mother trying to make ends meet for the sake of her son. ¡°And if something were to happen between Duncan and Liberty¡­ Well, I suppose it wille down to a fair match between me and her for Duncan¡¯s affection. And if I lose, then so be it. When ites to love, the strong doesn¡¯t alwayse out on top¨Cthat¡¯s the way it is.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Every man has a different preference for a partner. Some are just desperate for a partner and can settle for anymondy while others prefer a strong character in the person they are going to spend the rest of their lives with to form the ideal power couple. We don¡¯t know yet if Duncan is the former or latter type.¡± Mrs. Lewis expressed with a sigh, ¡°Lily, it¡¯s admirable that you are staying true to your conviction. but just remember that I¡¯m on your side. ¡°Liberty might not be hatching any ideas about Duncan right now but if she does fall in love with him later on, I will be the first to object to their marriage. She shouldn¡¯t even think about joining my family. My son has not even had a girlfriend yet, so why should he be marrying a woman already burdened with a child?¡± Lily smiled and said kindly, ¡°Thank you, I will do my best and know that however this ends, I gave it my all.¡± She was beaming with confidence. ¡°Lily, you don¡¯t even know how fond I am of you. I truly hope things will work out between you and Duncan. I believe in you! I long for the day we be family.¡± Lily smiled warmly. A crew hade to deliver the hand¨Cwoven goods to Serenity again. After inspecting the delivery and ensuring that there was no problem with the products, she settled the payment before issuing yet another new order. After seeing the part¨Ctime crafters off, she put the handicraft into packages and called a courier to collect them. Shortly after, the courier showed up to collect said packages. After the matter was settled, Serenity looked at the time and turned to Jasmine, ¡°Jas, I¡¯m taking Sonny to go shopping with me.¡± Chapter 1270 Chapter 1270 Chapter 1270 ¡°See you. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Jasmine did not avert her eyes from the book she was reading the entire time. Serenity observed how intently she was reading and teased her, ¡°Jas, you¡¯ve probably read all the books lying around here enough times to recite them from memory. It¡¯s a wonder to me that you¡¯re still amused by the same books over and over. ¡°Why don¡¯t you learn to write a novel? With your years of experience as a bookworm, I guarantee your work will be a hit that¡¯s going to fly off the shelves. I promise you I¡¯ll ce your books in the most prominent spot. ¡°What do you say? Embark on your journey as a star author.¡± Jasmine smiled and dismissed the idea, ¡°I just enjoy reading, writing is not for me. I¡¯m sozy that the only thing that would motivate me to move at all is good food, but you¡¯re expecting me to write an entire novel? Besides, do you think writing a book is easy as you make it out to be? Justing up with the plot alone is going to make you pull your hair out.¡± Serenity grabbed the car keys and the same wallet she had used for ages. Then, she took her dear nephew by the hand and prepared to go shopping for groceries. She candidly noted to Jasmine, ¡°Take inspiration from real life and write about the love affair between you and Mr. Bucham¡ªa guaranteed hit right there.¡± ¡°Our rtionship is too straightforward and boring. There were no unexpected twists and love rivals for me to talk about. On that note, your experiences with Zachary would make a good story, but I¡¯m not going to write it. Why don¡¯t you consider writing a biography?¡± Serenity grinned, ¡°I¡¯m not interested in doing that either. I¡¯m busy enough as is. Oh, by the way, I¡¯m attending this banquet tomorrow with my man. Are you going as well?¡± ¡°Yeah, Josh has been telling me about it. Speaking of which, our engagement ceremony ising up soon. You and Zachary must attend no matter what! It¡¯s going to be set before May for sure. He had his family pick out the earliest date possible. I¡¯ve never seen anyone in such a rush to get married.¡± ¡°That¡¯s because he loves you very much. He can¡¯t wait to marry you and take you home to pamper you.¡± Jasmine chuckled, Josh was certainly very fond of her.. Their rtionship had always been very stable. There was never any kind of dramatic disagreements, and they always kept it in and simple. It seemed to be working out for the loving couple and their marriage was going to turn out more than just fine. ¡°We¡¯re leaving, see youter.¡± Serenity took her nephew with her and ordered the two bodyguards to stay at their posts in the bookshop. She knew that other undercover bodyguards were tailing her and keeping her safe, so she figured it would be fine to leave two bodyguards at the bookshop. As soon as Serenity left, Elisa showed up. When she was told that Serenity had left to buy groceries, she remarked, ¡°She¡¯s the heraldeddy of the Yorks now but it seems like nothing¡¯s changed for her¨Cit¡¯s the same old routine.¡± ¡°This says a lot about Zachary¡¯s affection for Seren, doesn¡¯t it?¡± Jasmine pointed out, ¡°He knows the exact kind of life she wants to live and lets her do as she wants. He¡¯s not trying to force her to change or anything like that.¡± Elisa thought about it for a second and found herself agreeing with this. ¡°Did she take Sonny with her?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± ¡°I came here for Sonny! I was going to take him back to my house to y. Alice has been throwing up more oftentely and do you know what my brother has been saying? He says that she should get an abortion after seeing how much pain the pregnancy has been causing her.¡± ¡°That¡¯s crazy! He¡¯s going on about how Alice wouldn¡¯t be able to handle the pregnancy! So over the last two days, I¡¯ve been going back and forth with him about this. He keeps saying that having a baby is not the novel experience it¡¯s made out to be. That¡¯s why I¡¯m going to bring Sonny over, so he¡¯ll change his mind once he sees how cute the boy is.¡± Jasmine asked cautiously, ¡°Does your sister¨Cinw n to get an abortion too?¡± Clive and Alice had been married for many years and were finally having a child together. The Stones and Lafayettes have been waiting eagerly for them to produce offspring for years. Chapter 1271 Chapter 1271 Chapter 1271 Clive felt terrible seeing his wife in pain and had gone as far as to suggest an abortion to alleviate her pain. Jasmine had heard of husbands who doted on their wives, but this was the first time she had ever heard of a husband who suggested something as drastic as abortion as a solution. Elisa said, ¡°Of course she¡¯s not going to get an abortion! She thinks it¡¯s a ridiculous suggestion, understandably so, but that doesn¡¯t stop my brother from trying to persuade her to get an abortion. He keeps harping about ever since she got pregnant, she hardly had any appetite at all, and would regrly throw up anything she ate, even vomiting bile at one point. ¡°She¡¯s lost a lot of weight and it¡¯s causing my brother a lot of stress. Right now, my parents are at home every day to help keep an eye on her because they¡¯re worried that one of these days, my brother is going to force her to go to a hospital for an abortion.¡± That exined why Mrs. Stone had not been seentely. Jasmine expressed her concerns, ¡°Why aren¡¯t you guys taking her to the hospital if she¡¯s been throwing up so much?¡± ¡°We did, the doctor prescribed some medicine but it doesn¡¯t seem to be effective. She¡¯s currently pretty much strapped to the bed all day to conserve energy. They said she had a low progesterone count. So there you have it, being a mother sure isn¡¯t easy.¡± She admired all the mothers around the world. Jasmine noted, ¡°Anyway, Seren usually just goes to some nearby supermarket to get her groceries and should be back soon. When shees back, you can ask her to let you take Sonny back home. He¡¯s a wonderful and smart boy. I¡¯m sure your brother will change his mind once he sees the boy.¡± ¡°Well, I sure hope so too. I already asked for Liberty¡¯s permission as well. The moment I told her what my brother had been nning to do, she was furious and began scolding my brother. She mentioned that she was going to pay a visit after she finished up with work.¡± Everyone was overjoyed when they found out that Alice was with child. The Hunt sisters were very thoughtful and gave her many supplements to help with the pregnancy. The Yorks did the same and did not cheap out on gifts. Nobody foresaw that Alice would go through such a difficult pregnancy. ¡°They say that pregnant women like to eat sour food. Why don¡¯t you buy something sour for her and see if it helps with her vomiting?¡± Elisa shook her head. ¡°That¡¯s not going to help her. It doesn¡¯t matter what she eats, she¡¯s still going to throw them up regardless. Usually, she starts vomiting shortly after she eats. ¡°She does have the appetite for food, only she ends up throwing up anyway.¡± After witnessing her sister¨Cinw¡¯s harrowing pregnancy, Elisa, an unmarried woman, found herself traumatized by it. Why did men not have to bear the pains of pregnancy? Jasmine had run out of advice to give as she was very much out of her depth since she had never been married, much less had a child before. What were they supposed to do if even the medicine prescribed by the doctor was useless? Elisa waited for a while and soon, Serenity returned with Sonny. After being told the reason for Elisa¡¯s visit today, Serenity grew frantic and quickly called Zachary and gave him the bad news that she was not going to deliver lunch for him today. She told him to grab lunch at Wiltspoon Hotel instead. She needed to pay a visit to Elisa¡¯s home. Zachary expressed somberly, ¡°Alright, but don¡¯t forget about me tonight.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Serenity chuckled and assured her, ¡°Don¡¯t you worry, we have the rest of our lives to spend together.¡± This made Zachary feel better. After they ended the call, Zachary gave Clive a stern talking to. If not for Clive¡¯s dramatic reaction, Serenity would not have had to change her ns and pay an emergency visit to the Stones. Serenity took Sonny with her and when she was told that her sister was nning to join them, she picked Liberty up on the way. With that, the crew followed Elisa to the Stones¡® vi. They passed by Remy¡¯s vi which was still under renovation and noticed Remy¡¯s car parked outside. Elisa casually mentioned to Serenity, ¡°Remyes by pretty often to check on the renovation progress.¡± If it was her, she would have assigned such menial tasks to someone else instead of having to waste her timeing here every day. Serenity remarked thoughtfully, ¡°Remy attaches a lot of importance to this house, so it makes sense that he wants to keep an eye on the progress in person. Renovation is a very delicate process that takes a lot of time, so it¡¯s better for him to supervise in person. That way, he can immediately make arrangements when things go wrong to save time and money in the long run.¡± Chapter 1272 Chapter 1272 Chapter 1272 Back when Liberty and Hank got married and their ce was getting renovated, Hank had no time to monitor the progress. Liberty was the one who paid for everything but had no time to oversee the progress either since she was busy with work, so the task was left to Serenity who had time to help keep an eye on things. She experienced firsthand what it was like renovating a new ce and could naturally rte to how Remy felt. Still, she had a sense that the true reason Remy came so often was that he wanted to see Elisa. Elisa was a rather sharp¨Cwitted person as well but this was an asion where her perceptions failed her¨Cshe did not realize Remy had his eyes on her at all. Perhaps she stopped caring so much about these things since she failed to win over Zachary. Elisa drove to the main entrance of the vi and remarked, ¡°Good point, he mentioned something about buying this vi for his sweetheart and went on about how they would spend their married life here. ¡°I don¡¯t know who this sweetheart of his is supposed to be, but based on how attentive he has been regarding the renovation, I¡¯d say he cares a lot about this person.¡± Elisa suddenly grew envious. Everyone she knew had found partners. She was the only one who was all alone. Where was her Prince Charming? The man who would love her unconditionally? Where in the world was he and when were they fated to meet? ¡°Since Remy is your neighbor now, don¡¯t you visit him now and then? Did you manage to probe some information and find out who his sweetheart is?¡± Serenity tried to dig information out of Elisa. Meanwhile, the housemaids came out and opened the gate leading into the vi. The car drove past the entrance and Elisa mentioned candidly, ¡°He hasn¡¯t said anything. Seren, why don¡¯t you ask your man and see if he knows something?¡± ¡°He¡¯s not privy to other people¡¯s affairs and unless Remy himself hands him an invitation to his wedding, I doubt they¡¯re ever going to talk about this sweetheart of his.¡± Elisa smiled, that did sound like Zachary. Josh was the one who loved gossiping. He was always privy to thetest happenings; he had a talent for it. ¡°Ms. Elisa, Mr. Clive had just got home and immediately began persuading the missus to go to the hospital to get an abortion. Mr. and Mrs. Stone are furious and their patience is running out.¡± The housemaid promptly ryed the situation to Elisa after she stepped out of the car with the others. When the maid noticed that the Hunt sisters were here as well, she made sure to greet them politely. ¡°My brother is unbelievable¡­¡± Elisa quickly took Sonny into the house with Liberty and Serenity trailing behind her. Each of them was carrying bags of nutritional products they brought as gifts.All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Meanwhile, Remy had someone inform him of what was happening inside the house. When he was told that Elisa had returned home, he promptly instructed his bodyguards to keep an eye on the renovation while he carried some food and went to press the doorbell at the neighboring house. The previous housemaid was just about to return to the house when she heard the doorbell ring again. She swiftly turned around and went to the entrance, immediately recognizing Remy standing outside. She opened the door for him and made a guess, ¡°Mr. Johnson, are you here for thedy?¡± ¡°That¡¯s right, I brought some snacks that she might like. She¡¯s home, isn¡¯t she?¡± he said as he motioned to the bag of food he was carrying. ¡°She just got home. Please,e in, Mr. Johnson. However, would you mind waiting a while. before going in to see her? There¡¯s a little bit of a, let¡¯s say, situation going on right now.¡± Mr. Clive was insisting on taking the missus to the hospital to get an abortion. Remy was very understanding, ¡°It¡¯s okay, I can wait.¡° Chapter 1273 Chapter 1273 Chapter 1273 ¡°Mr. Johnson, why don¡¯t you wait at the gazebo for now.¡± The servant led Remy to the gazebo and apologized profusely for the inconvenience caused. Remy was a very understanding man, ¡°It¡¯s okay, why don¡¯t you get back to your work.¡± He sat down at a stone¨Ccarved table under the gazebo and ced the snacks he brought for Elisa on the table. He did not inquire what was going on inside the house. Ever since he bought the vi next to the Stones, it gave him an excuse to regrlye over and pay a visit to the Stones. At this point, most of the housemaids in the family recognized and treated him very politely. They would respectfully invite him into the house every time he came around. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. This time was the sole outlier where they did not invite him into the house immediately. He figured some sort of emergency must have happened and decided to not be too probing, especially since he was an outsider. If they would not tell him, he would not ask either. After all, he was nothing more than a neighbor. ¡°Mr. Johnson, let me get you a ss of water.¡± Although they were not letting him into the house yet, they still made sure to make him feel wee. Remy thanked the maid with a bright smile. The servant stepped out of the gazebo and quickly marched into the house. Inside the house, Clive¡¯s parents were huddled together on the couch. Mr. Stone was doing what he could tofort his wife¡¯s restlessness. ¡°Clive is only doing this out of love for Alice, please don¡¯t hold it against him. The boy is not in a rational state of mind right now.¡± Serenity poured a ss of water for Mrs. Stone. Liberty and Elisa made Alice sit with them on the couch and remained on guard so Clive could not take her away. Clive was ruffling his hair irritably. Did he not want the child? Of course he did. He wanted nothing more than to have a child with Alice, but her difficult pregnancy and her severe condition were driving him insane. She would throw up everything she ate and had lost pienty of weight since the start of the pregnancy. It was a very stressful experience for him as well. The way he saw it, his wife¡¯s well¨Cbeing held priority over the unborn child. Sonny approached Clive and stared curiously at his uncle. Something flickered in the little man¡¯s eves like stars in the night sky. ¡°Uncle!¡± Sonny greeted Clive warmly. Clive looked at Sonny. Sonny was a very healthy boy. His skin glowed with a bright red tint underneath and despite his young age, it already seemed like he would grow into a handsome boy. He was adorable and looked like a human¨Csized doll that stepped out of the storybooks. Whenever people met him, they were filled with an urge to hug him tightly and shower him with affection. Clive was not immune to Sonny¡¯s charms either. He carried Sonny in his arms. ¡°Uncle, are you feeling sad? Is everything ok?¡± Sonny was very sensitive and felt Clive¡¯s restless mood boiling inside him. He wrapped his arms. around Clive¡¯s neck and nted a gentle smooch on his cheeks tofort him and said innocently, ¡°Mom kisses me whenever I¡¯m feeling sad. It makes me feel better. ¡°Do you feel better now?¡± Clive waspletely enamored by Sonny¡¯s innocent disy of affection and smiled. He rubbed his cheek against Sonny¡¯s and said lovingly, ¡°Uncle feels better for now.¡± Chapter 1274 Chapter 1274 Chapter 1274 How nice it would be if childbirth was simple and effortless. He would like for him and Alice to raise their child without Alice having to go through such a harrowing experience. If a man could get pregnant, he would be more than willing to bear the pain of pregnancy rather than let Alice suffer. A housemaid went up to Elisa and whispered something in her ear. Elisa told the servant something in a hushed voice and sent the maid away. After that, she turned to Alice and told her, ¡°Alice, please don¡¯t hold it against my brother. He¡¯s a little out of it right now, you can see how even my mom is telling him off.¡± Alice could not deny that she was rather upset. She has been married to Clive for years now and the only reason they had pushed off having a child was that Clive was very possessive and wanted her all to himself. To appease him, she had been on the pill the entire time to avoid a pregnancy. It was to the point where rumors were beginning to surface that she was infertile. Atst, the couple had finally agreed that it was time for a baby. She was pregnant in no time and was more than ecstatic about the prospect of having a child. Although it was still rtively early, just the fact that there was now a life growing inside her womb, a child who she and Clive could call their own, had brought her great pride. The child was to be the heir to their bloodline. Her intrinsic maternal love has never felt stronger than the present moment; she regarded the child inside her as more important than her very life. How could she be expected to abort the child? Clive had been needlessly harping about taking her to the hospital for an abortion, insisting that they should give up on ever having children and it should just be the two of them forever. He justified it by saying that he had two brothers and they could bear the responsibility of preserving the bloodline. Alice was livid. She initially thought Clive was just rambling, but it turned out that he was serious. She eventually told Mr. and Mrs. Stone about this, and they were understandably furious to hear of this. She had not told her parents about this just yet, knowing that they would probably be so enraged that they would barge through the front door to give Clive a beating, ¡°Elisa, your brother went as far as to schedule an appointment with the doctor. How do you expect me to not be upset?¡± She vented her frustration to her sister¨Cinw. Clive clutched Sonny tightly in his arms a short distance away and said in a hurt voice, ¡°But I can¡¯t stand to see you suffer, so it¡¯s better to call it quits. If you truly like children that much, we can take in Sonny and he can spend time with you every day.¡± ¡°Serenity, are you listening to all this nonsense this man is spouting?¡± Mrs. Stone waspletely baffled by such a proposition, she grabbed Serenity¡¯s hand and turned to Clive, ¡°Sonny is Liberty¡¯s son, how dare you have the nerve to take the boy away from her?¡± Serenity hurriedly diffused the situation, ¡°Aunt Audrey, don¡¯t overexert yourself. Let¡¯s just calmly talk to Clive about this. It¡¯s not that he doesn¡¯t want the child, he¡¯s just very worried about Alice.¡± She turned to Clive and continued, ¡°Sonny is going to start attending preschool starting September so he won¡¯t be able to spend time with you guys every day. Think about this, Sonny looks very cute, doesn¡¯t he? One day, you and Alice can have a child as cute as him as well. ¡°A child is a symbol of love andmitment between a married couple, so how could you say no to that?¡± Clive scowled. ¡°But Alice hasn¡¯t stopped throwing up. Just look at how much weight she¡¯s lost! It hurts me to see this, so if it¡¯s going to take so much just to have a child, then I would rather not have a child at all.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Mrs. Stone was filled with violent rage and immediately began casting her eyes around the room to find something to fling at Clive. She rose sharply and marched to Clive to snatch Sonny from him, then he jabbed a kick at him while shouting, ¡°Pregnancy is hard? Do you think being a mother is any easier?¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t want to have a baby, you shouldn¡¯t have gotten Alice pregnant in the first ce. Now that she¡¯s pregnant, you have to see it through with her. You can¡¯t just suggest an abortion like it doesn¡¯t mean anything. You¡¯re killing your child! That¡¯s murder! ¡°You keep talking about how difficult pregnancy is, but do you know how harmful abortion is for a woman? Abortion does more damage to the body than childbirth and she¡¯s at the point of her pregnancy where a medical abortion won¡¯t do. If she¡¯s going to abort the child, she¡¯s going to have to take the surgical route, which is more harmful!¡± Clive was speechless. Liberty chimed in, ¡°She¡¯s right, abortion can be very harmful to women. Also, she¡¯s been pregnant for three months, hasn¡¯t she? Just hang in there a little longer and the violent vomiting should pass. At this point, abortion is just going to make things worse for her. Chapter 1275 Chapter 1275 Chapter 1275 ¡°Liberty, you¡¯ve done this before. Do you have any advice on how to stop her vomiting?¡± Now that he learned the risks of abortion, he relented from putting Alice through it. Liberty answered, ¡°I can¡¯t stop her symptoms, but I suggest if things don¡¯t get any better, you can go to the doctor for more advice. When I was pregnant with Sonny, I didn¡¯t vomit that much.¡± During her pregnancy, she had also heard tales of other mothers experiencing terrible and severe symptoms. She was d that her pregnancy was a rtively easy and stable one. In severe cases, some people did not stop vomiting until the child was born. ¡°We went to a doctor, but it¡¯s not helping,¡± Clive said irritably. ¡°Then she just has to tough it out and things will get better eventually. All I can tell you is that you should stop telling her to get an abortion. That¡¯s only going to make her feel stressed which doesn¡¯t help. Ideally, you should keep her in a rxed state through the pregnancy both mentally and physically.¡± Alice rose and said, ¡°Clive, if you ask me to have an abortion again, I will divorce you. I want the child and I will raise him myself if I have to.¡± ¡°My love.¡± Clive quickly approached Alice and took her hand, ¡°My love, you¡¯re going to kill me if you¡¯re seriously asking for a divorce. Alright, alright, I won¡¯t ever bring up abortion again. Let¡¯s work through this pregnancy together and once our baby is born, I¡¯ll teach the baby a lesson for putting you through so much pain.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you dare hit our baby! If you do, I¡¯m taking the baby with me and staying with my parents.¡± ¡°Okay, okay, no hitting. I promise to never hit the baby.¡± Clive cared about his wife more than anything. Upon knowing the dangers of getting an abortion, he finally gave up on the option altogether. Furthermore, Sonny contributed with his mere presence. Clive was enamored with Sonny and realized just how much he liked children. ¡°Let¡¯s just have one child, no more in the future.¡± After seeing firsthand how difficult pregnancy was, he decided that one child was all they needed, and no need for a sibling for the child. After seeing that Clive had let up atst and vowed to not talk about abortion anymore, Alice yielded as well, ¡°Alright, one child is good enough. No more, no less.¡± She thought that being pregnant was terrible as well. Everyone heaved a sigh of relief upon seeing that Clive had found an apt middle ground. Mrs. Stone took Sonny back to the couch and sat down. She red at Clive and warned, ¡°I will kick your butt if I ever hear you talking about abortion again. Now that you know how difficult being a mother is, you better learn to have more respect for your mother as well.¡± ¡°Okay, mom,¡± Clive and Elisa echoed the same response. The Stones¡® children had always been nothing but loving and loyal toward their parents. ¡°Seren, Liberty, why don¡¯t you two stay for dinner?¡± Mrs. Stone proposed after she peeked at the time. She then gently patted Sonny¡¯s head, ¡°Sonny, would you like to sleep over for a night so you can y with us?¡± Mrs. Stone waspletely captivated by Sonny. Serenity smiled and stated, ¡°Even if you don¡¯t invite us to stay for dinner, we¡¯re just going to stay here and eat regardless.¡± ¡°If Mom stays, I will stay too!¡± Although Sonny was fond of his aunts, he preferred to be in his mother¡¯spany. The only other person he trusted besides his mother was his Aunt Ser. He could be friendly enough with the others such as Jasmine, Elisa, and Zachary, and did not mind spending time with them. However, past a certain threshold, he would begin crying for mom. Mrs. Stone turned to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, your diner is closed during the afternoon, right? Why don¡¯t you and Sonny hang out here until dinnertime, and we will have the driver send you home after dinner?¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Sure,¡± Liberty agreed without pause. Chapter 1276 Chapter 1276 Chapter 1276 Serenity said, ¡°Aunt Audrey, Liberty wants to go to the car dealership to buy a car, and I have to go back to the bookshopter. Are you and Elisa free to apany Liberty to look at cars? I don¡¯t think it is safe to roam the streets every day riding her e¨Cbike with Sonny. That¡¯s why I suggested she buy a car. Zachary said he would give her one, but she didn¡¯t want it.¡± ¡°I am capable of buying a car myself. I don¡¯t need Zachary to give me one. I know Zachary is my brother¨Cinw, but I can¡¯t take his things just like that and be a freeloader. I don¡¯t want people to say that our family wants to take advantage of your inws.¡± They were poor, unlike the rich Yorks. However, Liberty does not intend to be a burden to her sister. She did not want any benefits from the Yorks. Touched, Serenity said, ¡°Liberty, Zachary wouldn¡¯t think badly of it, and neither would my inws.¡± Serenity knew her sister would always be considerate toward her. ¡°I know Zachary and the inws won¡¯t think that way, but I still don¡¯t want those people out there to say that about you. There was a time when Granddad and the others often troubled Zachary by asking him for money, which affected your reputation to some extent. ¡°It was fortunate that everyone knew the conflict between us and our old folks. Most of them sympathize with you. However, as your sister, I can¡¯t do things that drag you down. Besides, I¡¯m also capable of earning money, and I can buy whatever I want with my own money. That way, I can spend the money with peace of mind and joy.¡± Better to rely on oneself, than to rely on others. Elisa said, ¡°Seren, you go on with your work. We¡¯ll go with Liberty for the car survey.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll leave it to you. Elisa red at Serenity and said, ¡°Say that once more, and I¡¯m going to be mad at you.¡± Serenity giggled. A maid entered abruptly and said, ¡°Sir, Madam. Mr. York is here.¡± All eyes were on Serenity. Red¨Cfaced, Serenity mumbled, ¡°What brought him here?¡± Elisa teasingly replied, ¡°He¡¯s here because he misses you, duh. Our house is like a lion¡¯s den to him. It¡¯s only because you are here that he dares set foot in our house.¡± After giving Elisa a light punch, Serenity stood up and said, ¡°I¡¯ll show him in.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll go too.¡°. ¡°Elisa,¡± Mrs. Stone called out to her daughter, clearly disapproving of her apanying Serenity to greet Zachary. Elisa exined, ¡°Remy is here. He is sitting out there at the gazebo as we speak. I¡¯ll go bring him in.¡± Earlier, when the housemaid told Elisa about Remy¡¯s arrival, she ordered the maid to brew some tea and serve it to him along with some fruits and refreshments. Now that the situation between Clive and Alice had been settled, she was reminded that Remy was still outside. It would be rude to keep him waiting. ¡°Mom, have someone prepare cutlery and tes for two.¡± Elisa locked Serenity¡¯s arm in hers and walked out. Mrs. Stone exchanged nces with her husband. Whenever their daughter was at home, that new neighbor of theirs would find an excuse to drop by. Sometimes, he would even stay for meals. Elisa and Remy got along harmoniously. So long as Remy dropped by, she would almost always. spare some food. In the past, Remy would politely decline the offer. However, he has be more daring over time. All it took was for Elisa to ask, and he would blissfully stay for a free meal. It was obvious to both Mr. and Mrs. Stone how the two felt about each other. They were once young and in love too. Remy would either bring some of Elisa¡¯s favorite snacks or some inexpensive nicknacks every time he visited. His actions were able to please Elisa time after time. All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Perhaps he had fallen for Elisa. Furthermore, Remy was the fifth young master of the Johnsons. He was on par with Zachary in every aspect, and thus an excellent match for Elisa. However, Mrs. Stone took into consideration. that the Johnsons live in Annenburg, which was quite far away. As Elisa was her only daughter, she was reluctant to marry her daughter off to a distant ce. Chapter 1277 Chapter 1277 Chapter 1277 All members of the Stone family including Mrs Stone hoped that flisa would go for a young and talented man from Wiltspoon. By getting married in her city, it would be convenient for thern to meet each other frequently. They would know right away if Elisa got treated poorly at her inws¡® house. If she married far away, no one would know how their daughter was doing. Although the Johnsons were extremely cultured, both Mr. and Mrs. Stone were still reluctant to marry Elisa far away. Since Remy had not confessed his love to Elisa, it would be hard for them to discuss this topic with Remy. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Zachary saw Remy sitting under the gazebo as he got out of his car. Remy stood up and greeted him with a smile. ¡°Why are you sitting here alone, Mr. Johnson? Not going inside?¡± Zachary walked over naturally upon seeing a familiar face who was also a major client of his ¡°Seems like I came at an awkward time,¡± Remy replied with a smile. Zachary figured out what he meant right away. ¡°Are you here for a family visit, Mr. York? Or are you here to pick up your wife?¡± Zachary murmured, ¡°Both.¡± ¡°Wow! The power of love is strong indeed,¡± Remy joked with Zachary. ¡°Neither friends nor rivals are evesting in this world.¡± Remyughed at the remark. Zachary would never step into the Stones¡® vi if Zachary¡¯s beloved wife was not Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece, and neither would he ease his cold rtionship with Clive. Although it was difficult for the York Corporation and the Stone Group to cooperate, at least the hostility between them had died down after the meeting between the CEOs of their respective families. Clive always wanted Zachary to call him cousin, but Zachary had no intention of doing it. Clive was down in the dumps. Zachary was willing to approve Elisa as his cousin, but Clive did not get the same treatment. After all, Clive was not held in high regard by Serenity, unlike Elisa. ¡°Babe.¡± ¡°Remy.¡± Serenity and Elisa both came out of the house. They called out to the two men who were at the gazebo while walking toward them. Remy said to Zachary, ¡°Your sunshine is here.¡± Zachary retorted, ¡°Well, it seems to me that your shimmering moonlight is here as well.¡± The two briefly looked at each other. After picking up the things that he had brought over, Remy told Zachary, ¡°I¡¯ll go ahead. I wouldn¡¯t want to be the third wheel.¡± Remy walked toward Elisa while talking. ¡°Sorry to have kept you waiting, Remy. I heard from the housekeeper that you were looking for me. What seems to be the matter?¡± Elisa halted her footsteps in front of Remy. Remy handed over the goods to her. Looking at her with a smile on his face, he said to her in a gentle tone, ¡°I heard you liked the treats from this shop. I happened to pass by the store earlier today. So, I went ahead and bought some of your favorite treats for you. ¡°Here, this is for you.¡± Elisa received the gift and said, ¡°I just mentioned it casually. If I¡¯m up for some light bites, that ce is my go¨Cto. The ce has a nice ambiance to it; quiet and peaceful too. I could sit there for an entire day. ¡°Thank you, Remy.¡± Even for something she said without much thought, Remy still took note of it. He even went out of his way to buy those snacks and gift them to her. Elisa got to experience firsthand how it felt to be valued by someone. However, Elisa recalled that Remy once mentioned having a crush on someone. Not wanting to be involved in apetition for a man¡¯s heart ever again, she quickly expelled the weird happiness welling up in her heart. She adored Zachary for years, s, to no avail. As she witnessed how lovey¨Cdovey Zachary and Serenity were as a couple, she could not help but feel envious. Chapter 1278 Chapter 1278 Chapter 1278 ¡°It¡¯s nearly time for lunch. I don¡¯t suppose your kitchen is ready yet. Do you want to join us?¡± Remy was quite at home at the Stones¡® residence since he had the pleasure of dining there a few times. He said, ¡°My kitchen is still under renovation, so I don¡¯t have any cooking facilities yet. There will be a lot of people dining in the hotel at this hour. I don¡¯t think I can get a private dining room for myself. I¡¯d love to have lunch at your ce.¡± With a smile, Elisa weed him into the house. As for Zachary and his wife, Elisa needed not to attend to them. Standing next to Zachary, Serenity stared at the backs of Elisa and Remy before telling her man,¡± They look good together.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Zachary only had his eyes on Serenity. Following herment, he took a quick nce at the pair and faintly uttered, ¡°They do.¡± ¡°It¡¯s obvious that Mr. Johnson has the hots for Elisa, but he¡¯s not being truthful to her about his feelings. Zachary¨Cuh, I mean¨CBabe, can you try and put out feelers with Mr. Johnson?¡± Serenity was most eager for Elisa to start dating again. She could not shake the guilt that she stole Elisa¡¯s love every time she and Zachary appeared before Elisa. Elisa was really into Zachary. Able to read his wife¡¯s mind, Zachary held Serenity¡¯s hand and interlocked fingers with her as they walked out of the gazebo. He replied, ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll try and get something out of Mr. Johnson. I¡¯ll encourage him to go after Elisa if he¡¯s romantically interested in her. ¡°Don¡¯t get wound up in this, Seren. Nothing will ever happen between Elisa and me even if you aren¡¯t in the picture. She¡¯s not my type.¡± Serenity refused to admit to it. ¡°I¡¯m not getting wound up. That reminds me, why did youe over? It must be exhausting for you to make trips back and forth.¡± The journey from York Corporation to the Stones¡® residence was a lot further than Zachary making his way to Wiltspoon Hotel. Zachary would have time for a quick afternoon nap if he kept to the same lunchtime routine. Now that he was here at the Stones¡® residence, Zachary would have to rush back to the office after lunch. He only had time for a quick shuteye in the car. ¡°I came because I missed you.¡± Amused, Serenity answered, ¡°We leave home together every morning. Yet, you still miss me.¡± ¡°I miss you every time you¡¯re not with me. I can¡¯t stop thinking about you and can¡¯t be bothered to do anything if you go somewhere far away and won¡¯t be home for days.¡± As if Serenity would believe him. Still, his sweet nothings made her feel loved. He would only give his everything to his job and work his employees to the core when she was not around. ¡°Is Clive still being a d*ck?¡± Zachary sullenly asked. ¡°We managed to talk some sense into him. At least he stopped insisting on Alice getting an abortion. Aunt Audrey and my sister said that the abortion will only cause more harm to Alice. He didn¡¯t want Alice to go through that, so he quit talking about it. I heard from Elisa that he was at it for days. ¡°His attitude rubbed Aunt Audrey the wrong way. Pregnancy is hard enough. Men should cherish and love their wives who are willing to bear their children.¡± Women did not have it easy during pregnancy. Plus, childbirth could prove fatal. Women were basically exchanging their lives for the birth of their babies. Stopping in his tracks, Zachary turned his head and looked into Serenity¡¯s eyes with deep affection. ¡°I will always love and cherish you, Seren.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°We have not been married for a year. We¡¯re still in our honeymoon period. Only time can tell whether you¡¯re able to cherish me forever.¡± ¡°I will use a lifetime to prove my love to you.¡± Lowering his head, Zachary nted a warm kiss on her forehead. As she closed her eyes to enjoy the tender moment, he pulled her into his arms and sealed her lips. Nevertheless, he quickly released her from his grip. Zachary could not take things too far since they were at the Stones¡® residence. Serenity did not share his thick skin. ¡°Come on. Let¡¯s have lunch.¡± Free from his hold, Serenity opened her eyes and locked fingers with him once again as they approached the magnificent house. Chapter 1279 Chapter 1279 Chapter 1279 After lunch at the Stones¡® residence, Zachary had to make his way back to the office. Remy no longer had a good reason to remain at the Stones¡® vi. While eating. Clive had given Remy the dirty look multiple times. Remy remained a gentleman and kept a smile on his face when meeting Clive¡¯s res. It simply reflected poorly on Clive¡¯s manner, further infuriating Clive. ¡°Mr. Johnson, shall we leave together?¡± Zachary asked Remy. Remy replied with a smile, ¡°Sure. There¡¯s something I need to discuss with you too.¡± Serenity saw her man out the door. She was not in a hurry to leave as she wanted to spend some time with her aunt.. At the door, Zachary stopped and said to Serenity, ¡°No need to see me off, Seren. I¡¯m leaving with Mr. Johnson. Have a nice rest at your aunt¡¯s before returning to the shop.¡± His two bodyguards were at the shop. They could help Jasmine, so all the work did not have to fall on her. ¡°Get some shuteye in the car during your ride back. At least you won¡¯t feel tired in the afternoon. Don¡¯t drink too much coffee unless you n on staying awake the whole night.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. He would use his energy on her when he could not sleep. Serenity urged him, reflecting her concern for him and herself. Zachary answered, ¡°I will.¡± He did not feel annoyed by her constant reminder at all. In fact, he felt loved. As Serenity watched on, Zachary got into the car and rolled down the window to wave goodbye. With the car driving out of the Stones¡® residence, Zachary rolled up the window and stopped the car in front of Remy¡¯s home. Remy asked, ¡°Do you want toe in, Mr. York?¡± Zachary did not turn down his invitation. He got out of his car and followed Remy into the highly sought¨Cafter vi. The residence was built on a huge piece ofnd. ¡°Mr. York, the ce can be a little untidy since it¡¯s still under renovation. I hope you don¡¯t mind.¡± Remy took Zachary for a stroll around the yard. The renovation began inside the house, so it was a complete construction site inside. While there were building supplies piled up outside, the yard was in a better state than inside the house. Thendscape had been untouched for now. Remy did not move the decades¨Cold trees away since Elisa suggested not to. ¡°How much longer will the renovation take?¡± Zachary asked in a husky voice. After much thought, Remy answered, ¡°I can probably move in next year.¡± The major facelift to the structure contributed to the length of time. ¡°The renovation can be time¨Cconsuming and bothersome. I always leave the task to my butler.¡± All Zachary had to do was bring his suitcase in. Remy smiled. ¡°I can delegate the renovation to my butler for other properties, but this house means a lot to me. I want to do it myself to get the results I want. It will cost more time if we have to start over.¡± Tilting his head, Zachary nced at Remy and showed understanding. ¡°You do have to make an effort and make it special if you intend to make this house your marital home.¡± Remy curled his lips. ¡°Yes. I only want the best. I let her participate in the nning so she will be pleased with the style of d¨¦cor. I showed her the blueprints and asked for her opinions.¡± Seeing that Remy admitted his feelings for Elisa, Zachary paused and stared at Remy. He went straight to the point. ¡°So are you saying that you have fallen for Elisa, Mr. Johnson?¡± Chapter 1280 Chapter 1280 Chapter 1280 Remy looked back at Zachary. He was trying to read Zachary¡¯s thoughts through his expression. Knowing what Remy was after, Zachary said, ¡°Mr. Johnson, don¡¯t give me that look. I didn¡¯t love Elisa then. I don¡¯t have feelings for her now, nor will I be romantically involved with her in the future. She¡¯s never been my type.¡± This came from Zachary¡¯s heart. Others may think Zachary could not ept Elisa because of his business rivalry with Clive. Only Zachary knew that he simply did not see Elisa that way even though Elisa was not mean and unbearable as publicly rumored. Elisa was only being her authentic self. Still, he was not into Elisa. ¡°You should pursue Elisa if you like her. It¡¯s really none of my business, but I was only asked to feel you out about your thoughts.¡± Remy asked, ¡°Who sent you to ask me?¡± Following the query, Remy realized the question was unnecessary. Zachary¡¯s wife, Serenity, was Elisa¡¯s cousin. The girls were best friends before finding out they were family. Serenity felt she did Elisa dirty when she found out that her husband was Elisa¡¯s crush. Nevertheless, Elisa had been gracious. Instead of turning against Serenity, she stood up for Zachary and persuaded Serenity to cherish Zachary. Serenity should not pass up on having a rtionship with Zachary because of Elisa. Otherwise, Serenity would regret it for life. Elisa mentioned that Zachary was marriage material since a proud woman like Elisa was willing to fall for him. Due to Elisa¡¯s decency to let it go, Serenity and Zachary were able to get back together. Their rtionship was going stronger than ever. ¡°It must be your wife.¡± Remy added with a smile, ¡°I should have known.¡± ¡°Seren wanted me to put out the feelers. Why don¡¯t you confess your feelings to Elisa if you like her? Why aren¡¯t you going after her? What are you afraid of?¡± Zachary barraged Remy with questions. Before Remy could answer, Zachary uttered, ¡°You have seen what Seren and I have been through. I wonder if you have learned anything from us.¡± All content is property ? N?velDrama.Org. Remy had no words. ¡°I don¡¯t know if Elisa likes me.¡± Remy was timid when it came to his crush. He believed that he got on well with Elisa right now, and he craved the way they were getting along now Romy was afraid that Elisa might not let him into her heart and her house if he took their rtionship a step further The Stones were always watching him like a hawk. Remy understood that thest thing the Stones wanted was for Elisa to marry off far away to Annenburg. In fact, he was in charge of FC & Co.¡¯s businesses in Wiltspoon, so he spent most of his time in Wiltspoon. Elisa would still be living in Wiltspoon if she were to marry him. At most, they would probably have to fly back to FC Manor during the festive holidays. ¡°I think you made a good impression on Elisa.¡± Zachary encouraged Remy toe clean with his feelings and woo Elisa. Elisa¡¯s marriage would not matter to Zachary if she was not Serenity¡¯s cousin. Now that they were rted by marriage, Zachary hoped Elisa could find her true love. Serenity would only be able to put aside her worries when Elisa married someone as good as Zachary, if not better, and lived happily ever after. Remy stared at Zachary for a while before responding, ¡°Elisa and I are now friends. She doesn¡¯t have romantic feelings for me. She had been in love with you for a long time, and I want her to.e out of that and cool off before I can be truthful to her about how I feel. Her head will be clear then, and she¡¯ll know whether she loves me.¡± After much silence, Zachary uttered,¡± Since you have an idea of what you want to do, I should let you carry on, Mr. Johnson.¡± Chapter 1281 Chapter 1281 Chapter 1281 ¡°Don¡¯t hesitate to let us know if we can be of help to anything, Mr. Johnson. My wife and I are happy to do whatever we can.¡± Zachary added, ¡°We hope Elisa can find happiness.¡± Remy was in love with Elisa. Zachary believed that Elisa would find her happily ever after if she chose to be with Remy. The Johnsons were a decent family. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Many women in Annenburg saw Remy as husband material. He was one of the five heirs of the Johnson family and shared the same mother as Ben. Compared to the other boys in the house, he was a more popr choice. Since he oversaw the family business in Wiltspoon, Remy found peace away from his family¡¯s insistence to get married due to his long absence In Annenburg. There were many white¨Ccor women in Wiltspoon who had their eyes on Remy too. Remy may appear a mild¨Cmannered gentleman, but not to be fooled by his appearance, he was not the easiest to get through to. Remy was nice to everybody, always having a smile on his face. It was hard to read him on the type of women he liked. No one could tell that he set his sights on Elisa if he did not purchase the house next to the Stones ¡®residence and looked for every excuse under the sun to meet with Elisa. Remy and Elisa did not have a pleasant first meeting because Elisa nearly ran into his car and refused to give way. Remy was gracious to let it go and asked the chauffeur to reverse the car and allowed Elisa to go ahead. He had recognized who Elisa was and knew she was the Stones¡® princess with a fiery temper. Remy only gave way because the girl was unreasonable and not one to be messed with. As they engaged further, Remy discovered the public¡¯s unfairbel on Elisa. She was not mean in nature. Elisa was simply being true to herself. Somehow or rather, he loved spending time with. her. Remy was the first to find out about the sale of the property next to the Stone family¡¯s residence as he acquired the Zimmers¡®pany. That was how he could purchase the house before Clive. He wanted to be neighbors with Elisa. Remy would get to see Elisa often if they lived next to each other. Their frequent meetings would only increase his chances of winning her heart. ¡°I¡¯ll make Elisa the happiest woman alive like your wife is if Elisa and I end up together.¡± Remy had front¨Crow seats to his brother¡¯s affectionate acts toward his wife. Thanks to his older. brother, Remy had acquired plenty of ways to spoil his future wife. ¡°Be confident. I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll seed when you put your mind to it.¡± Zachary encouraged Remy. Elisa might as well grow old a spinster if she and Remy were not meant to be. ¡°I believe Mr. and Mrs. Stone are aware of my intention. Even Clive could tell. You saw the looks they gave me. They are merely keeping it from Elisa.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not that they don¡¯t approve of you. They just think youe from a faraway ce. Elisa is the apple of their eye, and as parents, they are reluctant for their daughter to move far away after marriage. It takes great courage for a woman to move away from familiar surroundings.¡± One of Zachary¡¯s uncles married someone who was not local to Wiltspoon. It had not been easy for his uncle back when he pursued his wife. His wife¡¯s parents moved into Wildridge Manor for six months to observe the character of Zachary¡¯s uncle and family. At the time, the girl¡¯s parents often put feelers out about Zachary¡¯s uncle. It was only when they were sure that Zachary¡¯s uncle and family were good people that they agreed to the marriage. The wife of Zachary¡¯s uncle was well¨Cloved in her family, and nobody wanted her to follow her husband to a faraway ce. If he had a daughter, Zachary believed he would not want her to move away and marry someone in a foreignnd too. ¡°I¡¯m aware they don¡¯t want their daughter to move far away from them. That was why I bought the house. This will be my marital home. My brother understands my ns, so he won¡¯t shift me away from Wiltspoon. I will continue to oversee the business in Wiltspoon.¡± Chapter 1282 Chapter 1282 Chapter 1282 FC & Co.¡¯s subsidiary in Wiltspoon could be a group on its own. The business was growing rapidly. As the person in charge, Remy would only be busier and be stationed here. Remy used to spend a week at FC Manor every month and could not be bothered to return to Wiltspoon. Now, it was the other way round¨Che did not want to leave Wiltspoon. Jane¡¯s due date was approaching. Remy was dying to find out if he would get a niece. That would be the reason for him to make a trip to Annenburg right away. However, the trip could wait if he received another nephew in the family. ¡°You must convince the Stones that she will remain in Wiltspoon even after she marries you. Just let them know that Elisa will only be a walk away from them. It only takes two minutes to go and have dinner with them.¡± Remy grinned. ¡°I¡¯ll let them know that they won¡¯t be losing a daughter when Elisa marries me. Instead, they will be gaining a son¨Cinw.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°You¡¯re as conniving as ever. Here¡¯s to you getting the girl.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Remy must admit that he was a little devious when it came to getting close to Elisa. ¡°I need to head back to the office.¡± Now that Zachary found out where Remy¡¯s heart was, he could go home tonight and report back to his wife. He had been there long enough. Remy saw Zachary out and watched Zachary leave. He stood at the door, looking at the Stones¡® residence for a while before heading back to his property. Not too longter, Remy took a ride out of his vi. He was a busy man too. Of course, he had all the time in the world when he was with Elisa. Remy could have tea with her all day if Elisa invited him. Once Zachary was gone, Mrs. Stone was not in a hurry to take a nap. She enjoyed small talk with her nieces. Mrs. Stone was aware that the sisters had sorted out the property issue back home. She was impressed with the girls. Other than the marriage of her younger son and daughter, Mrs. Stone was also concerned about Liberty¡¯s future. ¡°Seren, are you going toe with me to the ball tomorrow night?¡± Mrs. Stone first asked. Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°Aunt Audrey, I¡¯m attending Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s celebration. Zachary said he¡¯s a respectable man. He never turns down an invitation from Old Mr. Marshall.¡± Mrs. Stone curled her lips. ¡°Yes. I¡¯m happy that you¡¯re going to the event with Zachary as Mrs. York. You adapt to the circle in no time. Don¡¯t take to heart what others think of you. They won¡¯t do anything to you so long as you¡¯re not out of line. ¡°You can¡¯t change the fact that you¡¯re Zachary¡¯s wife. People will always say that you¡¯re dependent on Zachary no matter how much work you put into yourself. Things will only change. when you surpass Zachary and people only know Zachary through you. ¡°Since you can¡¯t change reality, don¡¯t hide and just face it.¡± Mrs. Stone was not getting Serenity to give up on trying. She still had to put in the work, but there was no need for her to go out of her way and prove herself. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Time would tell whether Serenity was worthy of her role as Mrs. York. Chapter 1283 Chapter 1283 Chapter 1283 ¡°You have been to many upper¨Css gatherings with Ms. Sox. You¡¯re not shy to socialize. In fact, you carry yourself with grace. The former you simply did not want to attract attention.¡± Mrs. Stone had a clear idea of her nieces¡® history. Serenity answered with a smile, ¡°Mrs. Lowe would take me and Jasmine to parties, but we were. there for the food.¡± Jasmine would persuade Serenity to go along every time. The pair would arrive at the scene and find a seat in a corner to enjoy the feast in delight. For foodies, it was all about the food. Once their bellies were filled, the pair would admire and appreciate the beautiful people at the party while discussing between themselves. Hence why no one knew Serenity and Jasmine¡¯s names even though they had attended multiple social gatherings. Jasmine made a name for herself when shey down on the ground during Mrs. Dawson¡¯s birthday celebration. ¡°Liberty.¡± Mrs. Stone could rx when it came to her younger niece. Serenity was lucky and had great in-ws. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Liberty was nodding off with her son in her arms. Sonny was already asleep. Holding her son, she could barely open her eyes. She was about to crash out. The sudden cry from her aunt pulled her back from dreand. Liberty turned to her aunt. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Aunt Audrey?¡± ¡°You¡¯re tired, Liberty. Take Sonny with you and get some rest in the guestroom. Your morning business can take a toll on you since you have to get up bright early.¡± Seeing that Liberty could barely stay awake, Mrs. Stone had to leave the conversation for another day. ¡°Sure, it¡¯s a tiring job, but it¡¯s the good kind of exhaustion. What do you want to say, Aunt Audrey? I¡¯ll head to bed after we finish this conversation.¡± Liberty smiled innocently. ¡°I wanted to ask you if you¡¯re interested in joining me for an event tomorrow night. Seren could take you, but I thought you might want toe with me if you don¡¯t want to go with Seren and Zachary. Don¡¯t worry about what people say about you. I¡¯m your aunt after all.¡± Liberty turned down the offer and responded with a smile, ¡°Aunt Audrey, you said it yourself. Seren can take me if I¡¯m interested, but it isn¡¯t my scene. Themunity is not right for me. Maybe I¡¯ll be a part of the higher society when my business grows and expands to several restaurants.¡± It was not Liberty¡¯s intention to go into the exclusive circle by riding on coattails. It was not her time right now. She would not be able to feel at home. Once she earned her spot, themunity would wee her with open arms without her even trying. ¡°I won¡¯t make you then.¡± Liberty even refused a car as a gift from her sister and brother¨Cinw. Mrs. Stone did not pursue the matter. With Duncan¡¯s frequent visits to Liberty¡¯s diner in mind, Mrs. Stone fell silent for a while before probing, ¡°Liberty, does Mr. Lewis have breakfast at your ce. every day?¡± Liberty answered, ¡°He woulde and give me business when my diner is open. He¡¯s not fussy with food. Although he¡¯s a billion¨Cdor CEO, he acts like your everyday people.¡± Mrs. Stone scanned Liberty¡¯s expression and could tell that Liberty thought nothing much of the daily visits. Mrs. Stone sighed to herself. Well, everybody had their own path to walk, and there were certain things that could not be stopped. While Mrs. Stone admired Duncan, Mrs. Lewis clearly looked down on Liberty. ¡°Go on and have your rest, Liberty. Elisa and I will take you to shop for a car after your nap,¡± Mrs. Stone lovingly uttered. Since Liberty was exhausted, she carried her son upstairs and entered the usual guest room. Clive had apanied his wife to get some rest in the bedroom. Chapter 1284 Chapter 1284 Chapter 1284 ¡°Any news, Seren?¡± Mrs. Stone threw a question at Serenity. Serenity huddled together with Elisa watching reels when her aunt asked her a question. Lifting her chin, she asked in confusion, ¡°What news, Aunt Audrey?¡± Elisa stopped the videos and looked at her mother. ¡°Are you referring to our investment? The contracts are signed and out of the way, so the work can commence now. i¡¯m hiring a few agriculturists to start farming. Seren, we should get a start on the sales front too.¡± Elisa was running the sales bit now. However, agriculture was still underway, and nothing had grown yet. Hence, they had not received any orders. Serenity responded, ¡°Sure. Tomorrow night is a good opportunity.¡° Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s birthday celebration was a business engagement too. Mrs. Stone was speechless. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Judging by the scowl on her mother¡¯s face, Elisa realized they got the wrong answer. She gave Serenity a nudge.. It dawned on Serenity what Mrs. Stone was trying to get to. ¡°Aunt Audrey, are you asking if I¡¯m pregnant?¡± ¡°Clive and Zachary are supportive of your project. I believe your investment looks promising, so I¡¯m not worried about that. I¡¯m not getting any younger. I¡¯m most worried about your marriage.¡± ¡°That reminds me, Seren. I need to go out for a bit,¡± Jolting to her feet, Elisa was ready to ditch Serenity and make a run for it. She fled to the door and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Seren. I¡¯ll take care of what you¡¯ve asked of me.¡± It was to go with Liberty to get a car. Mrs. Stone remarked, ¡°Seren, look at Elisa¡­ She and Anthony will be the death of me. She¡¯s twenty- seven now, and yet she doesn¡¯t see that time is ticking.¡± ¡°Elisa can take her time,¡± Serenity hinted. Mrs. Stone fell silent before replying, ¡°Remy¡¯s home is in Annenburg. It¡¯s too far away. I¡¯m not ready for Elisa to move away. It would be great if you can get Zachary to have a man¨Cto¨Cman talk about giving up on Elisa. Tell him to stop approaching Elisa. I don¡¯t want Elisa to be hurt again.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t Mr. Johnson buy a house? It¡¯s next door. You will be neighbors. How far is that?¡± Mrs. Stone answered, ¡°No matter how many properties he gets, it will not change the fact that he was born and raised in Annenburg.¡± Serenity was at a loss for words. ¡°Seren, it¡¯s time to start a family with Zachary.¡± ¡°Aunt Audrey, I don¡¯t have a bun in the oven even though Zachary and I don¡¯t use protection. I don¡¯t know if I have a fertility issue. I was thinking that I should go for a body checkup if I¡¯m not expecting in the next few weeks. I should get early treatment if the problem lies with me. ¡°If Zachary has a problem, at least we can get him the treatment he needs too.¡± Nevertheless, Serenity believed the issue was likely with her since Zachary was a beast in bed. It was hard to imagine her manly man firing nks. Mrs. Stone was concerned. ¡°Both of you are fit and healthy. I don¡¯t think you have a health issue. Rx. Sometimes, it¡¯s harder to get pregnant when you try to. The pressure can be too much.¡± By taking it easy or letting nature take its course, a baby might suddenly pop up and give her at surprise. ¡°Aunt Audrey, some people may look healthy, but they could have underlying health issues. You¡¯ll never know what¡¯s wrong without a physical examination.¡± Mrs. Stone queried Serenity about her menstrual cycle before giving an input, ¡°The period cramps. shouldn¡¯t affect the pregnancy. You might be taking in a lot of stress. Do your inws pressure you? Don¡¯t bother with them. Just rx and take it easy. If things get too much, go on a holiday. with Zachary.¡± Chapter 1285 Chapter 1285 Chapter 1285 Serenity gave it a thought before replying, ¡°I don¡¯t take on a lot of stress. My inws are not pressuring me either. Nana only talked about having a great¨Cgranddaughter every once in a while. Zachary said he¡¯s taking me on a trip to Annenburg once he¡¯s done with his work. We¡¯re going to visit Mr. Young¨C Johnson.¡± Zachary believed Serenity did not have many friends, so he was trying to get her and Ben¡¯s wife, Jane, together. Since Remy was part of the Johnson family, and he was in love with Elisa, Serenity could befriend. Jane and get an understanding of the Johnson family for Elisa. At least, she could check out if the Johnsons were as nice as the public put it out to be. The way Serenity saw it, Elisa and Remy got along well. They looked good together. Serenity would stand on Elisa¡¯s corner and convince Aunt Audrey if the Johnsons proved to be a good family and if Elisa developed feelings for Remy too. Sure, Remy was hailed from Annenburg, but he had bought a house next to the Stones and oversaw FC & Co.¡¯s businesses in Wiltspoon. He was stationed in Wiltspoon. Elisa would still be living in Wiltspoon if she married Remy. In fact, she would live next door to her family. Nevertheless, it was too soon to talk about this. Remy had not even professed his feelings to Elisa, and Elisa never revealed what she thought about Remy. ¡°Okay. You should travel and get some fresh air. The child wille when you¡¯re feeling good. I guess Zachary is not in a rush since your inws aren¡¯t pressuring you to start a family. Don¡¯t obsess about getting pregnant. ¡°You can go for a physical to see what¡¯s the cause if you can¡¯t get pregnant after trying for two years. S¨CSometimes¡­¡± Mrs. Stone did not know how to put it. Serenity looked at her, wanting her aunt to carry on. Since nothing was private between them girls, Mrs. Stone whispered, ¡°Sometimes, frequent sex can affect your chances of conceiving.¡± Serenity was lost for words. Having guessed the answer by the look on Serenity¡¯s face, Mrs. Stone said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re still in your honeymoon period. It¡¯s normal, but you can¡¯t always let Zachary have his way. You need to prioritize your health.¡± ¡°I will, Aunt Audrey. He¡¯s not the kind who only cares about his own pleasure.¡± She should go home and have a talk with Zachary. He did not have to ve away at the office during the day and plow away during the night. The constant activity was not helping with putting a bun in the oven. ¡°Zachary is good to you, so I don¡¯t have to worry much. I¡¯m concerned about your sister. Does Duncan have a thing for your sister? He¡¯s great with Sonny and is always helping your sister.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis said he simply took a shine to Sonny. My sister isn¡¯t interested in Mr. Lewis that way.¡± Not only did Mrs. Stone get Duncan¡¯s impression of Liberty, but Serenity and Zachary had the same idea too. Still, Duncan did not admit to it. He insisted that he was only fond of the boy. It was true that Liberty did not have that kind of feeling for Duncan. Mrs. Stone sat in silence for a while before giving her two cents. ¡°I appreciate a young talent like Duncan, but Mrs. Lewis won¡¯t win mother¨Cinw of the year for sure. She doesn¡¯t care for your sister¡¯s upbringing. It¡¯s fine if they¡¯re just friends, but if¡­¡± She left her sentence hanging. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Aunt Audrey. It won¡¯t be easy for my sister to fall in love again.¡± Serenity hoped her sister could find her second chance at love and be happier than Hank. The failure of her marriage was quite a blow to Liberty. Serenity could not forget her sister weeping when she first decided to go down the divorce route. Liberty locked her heart away, refusing to let anybody in. ¡°Sigh. I guess we can only let it be.¡± Mrs. Stone knew that there was no point talking about it or preventing it. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°Have your nap, Aunt Audrey. I¡¯m going back to the shop.¡± ¡°Sure,¡± Mrs. Stone said before urging her to pay attention to her safety on the road. Chapter 1286 Chapter 1286 Chapter 1286 After walking Serenity to the door and seeing her drive away, Mrs. Stone turned on her heel and returned to the house. No sooner had Serenity returned to the shop than Jessica barged in. Serenity was surprised by Jessica showing up. ¡°Where¡¯s your sister, Serenity?¡± Jessica shot the question the moment she walked into the shop.. ¡°What business do you have with my sister, Mrs. Brown?¡± Serenity put away her car keys and faintly asked Jessica. Jasmine kept her eyes peeled, ready with a broom for when Jessica got out of line. Jessica was ck and blue in the face. With that ck eye, she appeared rather gaunt. She was only twenty¨Cfive years old, a year younger than Serenity. Yet, Jessica looked a lot older. than Serenity right now. It was probably because Hank did want to foot the bills for her expensive skincare products now that he got the girl. Liberty had a better skincare routine than Jessica currently. Serenity had no sympathy for Jessica despite how she looked now. In fact, Serenity believed Jessica deserved it. ¡°I need to have a talk with her.¡± Jessica was ck and blue from getting beaten up by her sister¨Cinw and parents¨Cinw. Although her face was no longer swelling, the bruises were still apparent. She did not want to go. back to her parents as her parents and brothers would only jump down her throat. She secretly eloped with Hank, causing her parents to miss out on getting a substantial financial gift. Her parents mentioned that Jessica could forget crying in their arms when the Browns mistreated. her since she hastily jumped into marriage with Hank. However, she was down in the dumps and needed to spill her guts to someone. Jessica looked at the contact list on her phone and found no one to talk to. Her real friends left her when she came between Hank and Liberty¡¯s marriage. Besides, Jessica did not want anybody else she knew to find out that she had a hard time with her inws. She immediately thought about Liberty. It was ironic that the mistress wanted to confide in the first wife. Yet, Liberty was the only one who had firsthand experience of the Browns¡® craziness. ¡°My sister has nothing to talk about with you. You can leave if it¡¯s about the Browns. My sister is not rted to the Browns. Don¡¯t worry about my sister going back to him. It¡¯s your husband¡¯s problem if he finds another woman. My sister has nothing to do with it. ¡°My sister has known Hank for over a decade, and he¡¯s her first love. They were so in love and were happy after the wedding. In the end, he ended the marriage because of you. It¡¯s clear this man can¡¯t be trusted. Just look at what happened to my sister. One day, the same will happen to you.¡±Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Jessica peevishly snapped back, ¡°Hank and I are getting along fine, I¡¯m not here to talk about that. I¡¯m just¡­ Where did Liberty go? I went to her diner, but it was closed. She¡¯s not at her rented ce. I called her, but she didn¡¯t pick up. She won¡¯t even reply to my texts.¡± ¡°That means my sister doesn¡¯t want to give you the time of the day. Whatever you want to say, you can go back and talk to your husband. You and your inws should note looking for my sister over every little thing. Why does my sister have to lend an ear?¡± Mrs. Brown would often moan to Liberty whenever she had a fight with Jessica. Now Jessica was doing the same thing. Serenity had no words about the family. Her sister was not an emotional dumpster to listen to the Browns¡®ints. Serenity was tempted to tell her sister to charge these people the next time they came to pour their feelings again. Chapter 1287 Chapter 1287 Chapter 1287 Jessica made a long face. A whileter, she turned on her heel and walked out. ¡°Mrs. Brown.¡± With Serenity calling after Jessica, Jessica turned around and looked at her, waiting to get an answer about Liberty¡¯s whereabouts. Serenity yed nice and reminded her, ¡°The bruises on your face are obvious. You might want to get something to cle them away. I heard that your wedding with Mr. Brown ising up. The ck and blue would not go well with the theme of your wedding.¡± Jessica¡¯s wrinkles deepened with a grimace. Without a word, she cocked her head back and strutted out of the shop with her chest out. It was as if by doing so, she could prove her life could not be any better. A delivery person arrived. Jasmine ordered milkshakes to the shop. She took the milkshakes and gave a cup to her best friend. Jasmine gloated, ¡°The Browns must have abused her. I thought she was all that, and her mother¨Cinw and sister¨Cinw had nothing on her.¡± Sipping on the milkshake, Serenity replied, ¡°She got a whole family up against her. That¡¯s hard to beat.¡± ¡°Either domestic violence happens, or it does not. Now that she lost her first physical fight with the Browns, things will only get worse for her unless she and Hank divorce.¡± Serenity had no sympathy for Jessica. She wished Jessica the worst luck in the world. Jessica was abused before the wedding even happened. Things would only go downhill for her. ¡°Liberty fought back when she was attacked at home. She ran after Hank with a knife and scared the Brown family. Although they were mean as ever, none of them, ever daredy hands on Liberty again.¡± The Brown family preyed on the weak. ¡°I thought the Brown family had changed for the better when they came to say thank you.¡± Jasmine enjoyed a mouthful of milkshake and said, ¡°I guess a leopard can¡¯t change its spots. ¡°Who cares what they do? Jessica wanted the man, so now she can live with the consequences. She deserves it!¡± Serenitymented with a smile, ¡°I should thank her. It wouldn¡¯t be so easy for my sister to get out of hell and gain Sonny¡¯s custody if it wasn¡¯t for her.¡± Jasmine uttered, ¡°I bet Hank and Jessica will be jealous when your sister finds a better man.¡± Serenity merely grinned without continuing the conversation. Marriage was not in the cards for Liberty right now. Meanwhile, Callum put his weight on his hands against the cash register at Spring Blossoms and stared into Camryn¡¯s eyes. He asked, ¡°How was it? The business opportunity must have brought. you a lot of profit.¡± Taking the Marshall family¡¯s instructions, the Wiltspoon Hotel ordered a lot of flowers from Spring Blossoms to set up the venue. Instead of talking about the profit, Camryn said, ¡°I¡¯ll buy you dinner tonight. ¡°But not at Wiltspoon Hotel. It¡¯s expensive there.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Thest time she treated him to dinner, it cost several hundred dors. For a small¨Ctime business. owner, several hundred dors on a dinner was a lot. The money could have covered her employees¡® and her expenses for three days. Callum did not order anything fancy in consideration that she did not carry much cash with her back then. Hence, the bill only came up to a few hundred dors. Camryn would be spending more if he ordered the more expensive dishes. Chapter 1288 Chapter 1288 Chapter 1288 Although Callum brought Camryn two business deals and revenue, she could not possibly spend all the profits on buying him dinner. ¡°Alright. You can pick the ce since it¡¯s your treat. I¡¯m happy if you want to cook for me too.¡± It did not matter to Callum where he was having the meal so long as his fianc¨¦e was treating him. If Camryn could read his mind, she would challenge Callum about her being his fianc¨¦e. Likewise, Callum would refute that since his nana made her his spouse candidate, so she was his fianc¨¦e. ¡°I can¡¯t see, Mr. Callum. I can¡¯t cook.¡± Camryn calmly reminded Callum that she was blind. She could move freely in a familiar environment, but cooking was on another level. Camryn would make her own food if she had her eyesight. Despite being a child of the Newman family, Camryn used to do everything herself. The smile on Callum¡¯s face faded. Oh, right. She could not see. How was she supposed to cook? He would probably not taste his wife¡¯s cooking if she still could not see after their wedding. s, Callum would never experience the joy Zachary had. On second thought, Callum could take over the cooking. ¡°I heard about a seasoned doctor who people dubbed the miracle healer. Maybe he can treat your eyes.¡± Callum added, ¡°Even if we can¡¯t find the old doctor, we can expect some results from his student.¡± He had not asked Remy whether he could get in touch with the miracle healer or his student. Callum had not reached the point where Camryn trusted himpletely. There was no way Camryn would think he was a good guy just because he introduced some business to her. The girl put up walls around her. Although she was mild¨Cmannered, she kept at distance from people and refused anybody from entering her world. ¡°I know. My aunt told me. The miracle healer is myst hope to see again, but he only exists in the rumors. Who knows whether the miracle healer is alive or not? The doctor and his student¡¯s whereabouts are unknown.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Camryn was first anxious and eager to regain her eyesight, but now she was indifferent about it. It would be great if she could see again. Otherwise, she had adapted to living in darkness. Her sight would probably be restored if the doctor, who had reintroduced light to her world, was still alive. s, the great ophthalmologist had passed away. She could see shades of light, but everything else was still a blur to her. She was no different than a blind person. Camryn¡¯s aunt put all her hope on the miracle healer. After much silence, Callum said, ¡°That¡¯s true. Not many of our generation know about the miracle healer, much less know where he is.¡± Callum had sent a text message to ask his nana, but Grandma May told him that he was on his own, and with good faith, God would guide him to the miracle healer. Grandma May did not want to get involved in this. Callum moaned about her irresponsibility in his mind. She shoved a potential wife to him and washed her hands off the whole thing by flying to Jensburg with Kevin. He wondered if Kevin made any progress with Hayden. Judging by Kevin¡¯s dislike for Hayden, he probably had not even made the first move. How was Nana going to remedy that? With Nana¡¯s tactics mind, Callum would rather approach Camryn himself than fall into Nana¡¯s set¨Cup. ¡°I¡¯ll leave it in the hands of God.¡± Camryn knew the real cause of her blindness. She was fed poison for a long time. The dosage was suddenly increased one day, and her body could not take it. Camryn nearly met her fate that day. Although the doctors resuscitated her, she had lost her sight since. Ten years ago, her aunt had filed a police report, but the investigation came back empty. Her stepfather fired all the servants from a decade ago as a way to put an end to the matter. Chapter 1289 Chapter 1289 Chapter 1289 Camryn and her aunt had an idea of who fed her the poison, but they had no hard evidence. Ten years ago, Camryn was only a sixteen¨Cyear¨Cold teenager. Since her aunt had married and moved out of the city, she could rarelye back to her family home. They could not find proof against the poisoner. All Camryn knew was that her aunt got into a fight with her stepfather. Her aunt left in tears after her stepfather pped her. Since then, her aunt always stayed at Wiltspoon Hotel whenever she was back in the city. She had not stepped foot into the Newmans¡® residence. Callummented, ¡°You have a positive outlook on life.¡± Camryn faintly replied, ¡°What can I do? Will crying help me see again? ¡°No matter what happens, I need to face and ept reality.¡± Impressed, Callum uttered, ¡°Not bad. I like the way you think.¡± With a straight face, Camryn asked, ¡°What time is it, Mr. Callum? We should go and have dinner if it¡¯s time.¡± One employee had gone out to make a floral delivery while the other stayed behind to watch the shop. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. The employees could not take their eyes away from Callum. They would talk among themselves about the York boys¡® good looks being true when they found out who Callum was. Their beautiful genes were not just rumors. Callum seemed to look out for their boss too. Camryn mentioned Callum brought business to the shop even though he only came around twice or thrice. The two employees had teased Camryn, saying Callum had a crush on her. Camryn never took the comments to heart even though she suspected it herself. She refused to believe Callum had real feelings for her. It must be a novelty for him since this was his first encounter with a blind person.. Most were curious when they found out that she was blind. Callum looked at the time and said, ¡°It¡¯s early. There¡¯s no rush. You can buy me dinner in another half an hour.¡± While the pair were talking, two cars approached and pulled up in front of Spring Blossoms. The employee went out to wee the customer, but halfway out, she turned around and made her way back. She told Camryn, ¡°Boss, your mom is here.¡± It was Mrs. Newman. The bodyguards got out of the car and opened the door for Mrs. Newman. Despite hearing that her mother was here, Camryn maintained a nk expression. Callum was aware of Mrs. Newman¡¯s ill-treatment toward Camryn Serenity fooled him into driving Camryn back to the shop because Mrs. Newman abandoned her in a foreign environment. As a mother, Mrs. Newman was cruel to dump her daughter somewhere unfamiliar when she knew her daughter could not see. Camryn could meet with an ident if she was not careful. Mrs. Newman was such a heartless mother. Although Callum couldbel Mrs. Newman as an uncaring mother who could care less about her daughter, Mrs. Newman gave Carrie all the love in the world. This was where Callum lost the plot. Camryn was Mrs. Newman¡¯s biological child. How could she y favorites to this extent? She was cruel to the oldest child and doted on the youngest. It was said that Mr. Newman, her uncle and stepfather, was nicer to Camryn than Mrs. Newman as the mother was. Mrs. Newman caught sight of a luxury sedan parked nearby when she got out of the car. It belonged to Callum. ¡°Are you here to buy flowers, mister? Who is it for? I¡¯ll get it wrapped up for you.¡± Mrs. Newman entered the shop and walked into Camryn talking to a tall guy. Callum yed along. ¡°I want a bouquet of roses for my fianc¨¦e. I¡¯m looking at ny¨Cnine roses. Please bundle them up for me. I want to take it with me in a bit.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Chapter 1290 Chapter 1290 Chapter 1290 Camryn walked around the cash register to retrieve the roses for Callum. As if she just heard the footsteps, Camryn stopped what she was doing and turned her head to face Mrs. Newman. She indifferently uttered, ¡°Mom.¡± Mrs. Newman first checked Callum out. Unable to put her finger on the familiar face, she painted a smiling face and asked, ¡°You look familiar, mister. And you are?¡± The person with the Maybach was no ordinary man. Straightening his back, Callum turned around and met Mrs. Newman¡¯s gaze. He courteously responded, ¡°Callum, ¡°ork.¡± ¡°Ah, Callum York.¡± Mrs. Newman could count the time she had met the nine heirs of the York family because they rarely attended any social engagements. The outside world would probably not know how the York boys look or what their names were if they never joined the corporate world. The York family shielded their children well from the world.. Mrs. Newman beamed at the mention of Callum¡¯s name. She wanted to be friendly with the York boys so that her daughter could marry into the family. Although Mrs. Newman thought it was strange that Callum would buy flowers at Camryn¡¯s shop, it was not the time or ce to dwell on that fact. ¡°Hello, Mrs. Newman,¡± Callum politely greeted. With a smile, Mrs. Newman asked, ¡°I overheard that you were buying flowers for your fianc¨¦e. Who¡¯s the lucky girl? Why hadn¡¯t I heard about your engagement?¡± It was a pity that Zachary married a country bumpkin like Serenity. Fortunately, Zachary had eight more brothers and cousins. Apart from Zachary and the youngest two in his family, there were five boys who were well¨Csuited. for her Carrie. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Hearing that Callum was engaged, Mrs. Newman wanted to know who the girl was. Carrie was not out of the woods yet. Since Serenity sued Carrie again, Mrs. Newman and her husband had been going around, figuring out ways to get their daughter out of jail. They had also made arrangements to hire the best defense attorney for their daughter. Although Carrie hired people to jump on Serenity and trashed her car, Serenity did not suffer any physical harm. Carrie would only receive a light sentence if Serenity could forgive her. However, Serenity, the country bumpkin, refused to let Carrie off the hook. The cause of this was none other than Camryn. Mrs. Newman had never liked Camryn. In fact, she wished this daughter of hers was dead. It was. her husband who convinced her to spare Camryn¡¯s life because Camryn was blind and was her dead ex¨C husband¡¯s only flesh and blood. Callum grinned and replied, ¡°We¡¯re not engaged yet, but she¡¯s already a wife to me. We¡¯ll have ant engagement party when I propose to her. I¡¯ll send you an invitation when that happens. Doe.¡± Despite Mrs. Newman¡¯s nastiness toward Camryn, she was still Camryn¡¯s mother. Callum would dly send an invitation card to his mother¨Cinw when he got engaged to Camryn. His mother¨Cinw could have a chance to attend their engagement party. It was a guarantee to rub Mrs. Newman the wrong way. Mrs. Newman had idea Callum¡¯s fianc¨¦e was the daughter she loathed with all her heart. Following Callum¡¯s repiy, Mrs. Newman answered with a smile, ¡°Thanks for the invite, Callum. It will be my pleasure to attend your engagement party.¡± Even though the Newmans had a tiff with Zachary and his wife, Mrs. Newman could not stop dreaming about marrying her younger daughter into the York family. At worst, Carrie could leave out Zachary¡¯s younger brother as a husband candidate. Chapter 1291 Chapter 1291 Chapter 1291 Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Are you here to bring Ms. Newman home for dinner? Is there something you need to discuss with her? If so, I don¡¯t want to intrude on your mother¨Cand¨Cdaughter time,¡± Callum tenderly asked Mrs. Newman, acting like he had no idea of Camryn¡¯s status in the family. Mrs. Newman was not here to give Camryn a hard time for once. She came to notify Camryn of Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s business engagement at Wiltspoon Hotel tomorrow night. Camryn was to go with Mrs. Newman. Of course, Camryn was not there to rece Carrie. Mrs. Newman merely wanted to introduce Camryn to an old CEO who may be helpful to the Newmans¡® family business. Although Camryn was blind, she was prettier than Carrie. Camryn¡¯s soft and calm voice was soothing to the ear. Mrs. Newman was sure the old CEO would be captivated by Camryn¡¯s beauty. ¡°You¡¯re not a bother at all. I just want to say a few words to Camryn before I have to leave.¡± Mrs. Newman kept a friendly attitude in Callum¡¯s presence. She said to Camryn, ¡°Don¡¯t open your shop for business tomorrow afternoon, or you can get your worker to look after the shop. Come home early tomorrow. I¡¯ll paint your face, and you can put on an evening gown. Come and attend an event with me tomorrow.¡± Before Camryn could say anything, Callum jumped in and asked with a smile, ¡°Are you talking about Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s event?¡± ¡°Yes. You must be attending Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s event too. We¡¯d kill for an invite.¡± Since the Newmans became billionaires, Mrs. Newman had been keen to participate in social engagements. She believed she blended into the circle of the true upper crust. Mrs. Newman wanted to bring her younger daughter along so everybody would know how remarkable Carrie was. Although the n was to get Carrie to marry into the York family, Mrs. Newman did not want to put all her eggs in one basket. The heirs of the York family were not easy to control. Her Carrie might not find a potential husband with the family. There were many wealthy men in Wiltspoon. Mrs. Newman could bring her daughter along to these parties to look for a good family. Of course, these families would also be checking out her darling daughter too. There were two sides to everything. The Newman family was sizing people up for a potential husband, but the other party was doing the same too. Callum smiled and said, ¡°The party will be held at my family¡¯s hotel. My brothers and cousins will be attending too.¡± Mrs. Newman responded, ¡°Tomorrow night must be the biggest event in Wiltspoon.¡± It was a shame that her darling daughter could not attend. Old Mr. Marshall seldom organized a ball this early. However, he moved the date up by six months. this year. There was no telling whether it was because Old Mr. Marshall was getting old or was poor in health. Mrs. Newman was furious with Serenity again at the thought that her precious daughter was going to miss out on tomorrow¡¯s event. Of course, Mrs. Newman also put the fault on her older daughter. ¡°Did you get what I just told you, Camryn?¡± Mrs. Newman asked. While holding the flowers for the employee to wrap them up in a bundle for Callum, Camryn replied, ¡°I¡¯m not going.¡± She would only be embarrassing herself in such a social setting since she could not see. Besides, her mother never took her to social gatherings. Now that Mrs. Newman wanted to bring Camryn out of the L¡¯e, the former must be up to no good. Although Camryn never got an update from her mother about Carrie, she knew that her stepfather and mother were trying to get Carrie out of jail. Camryn dared not think or guess the things they would do to save Carrie. Nevertheless, Camryn got the feeling that her mother wanted to take her to the event to sell her off. Mrs. Newman made a face. She was giving the mole rat a chance by bringing her to a social event. Yet, this mole rat was ungrateful. As Callum was still around, Mrs. Newman had to stop herself from blowing up in Camryn¡¯s face. She toned down the harshness in her tone. ¡°Camryn, you heard my conversation with Callum. The party tomorrow night is important. It¡¯s the biggest business engagement in Wiltspoon. The people attending are movers and shakers of Wiltspoon. ¡°You coop yourself up in the flower shop every day. You should get out there and make friends. How can you just live in your own world? I¡¯m taking you to see the world.¡± Chapter 1292 Chapter 1292 Chapter 1292 ¡°Either way, I¡¯m going to send someone to get you tomorrow afternoon if you don¡¯te home. No matter what, you¡¯re going with me tomorrow night.¡± Camryn remained aloof as she replied, ¡°I can¡¯t see, Mom. What do you mean, see the world? The world to me is darkness. There¡¯s nothing for me to see.¡± ¡°You!¡± Furious, Mrs. Newman was dying to give Camryn a p. ¡°I have said my piece. You can either listen or ignore it. Regardless, I¡¯m sending a car to you tomorrow afternoon. I¡¯m busy, I got to go.¡± Mrs. Newman could not yet along with Camryn. Resentment and hatred overtook Mrs. Newman every time she saw Camryn¡¯s face. Now that she had done what she came here for, Mrs. Newman said, ¡°Sorry you have to see that, Callum. My daughter lost her confidence after losing her sight.. ¡°I want to take her to the party and help her out of her funk. Hopefully, she¡¯ll find her confidence. again. I need to attend to business, so I need to go. Callum replied, ¡°Sure. Bye, Mrs. Newman.¡± Mrs. Newman gave Camryn an angry look before taking off with her bodyguards. With her mother¡¯s footsteps fading away, Camryn told her employee, ¡°No need to wrap the roses.¡± The employee was confused; she thought Mr. Callum wanted to buy flowers. Mr. Callum even said that the flowers were for his fianc¨¦e. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. ¡°Oh, carry on with the wrapping. I really want the roses.¡± Callum instructed the employee to bundle the flowers up. ¡°Mr. Callum?¡± Camryn thought Callum was only covering up for her to keep her mother from learning that they had been acquainted for a while now. ¡°I¡¯m interested in getting a bouquet.¡± Since Callum had put it out there, Camryn was not going to say no to business. She sold the bouquet to him. Once the bouquet was ready, Callum paid for it and grabbed the flowers before saying, ¡°Let¡¯s go, Ms. Newman.¡± ¡°Huh?¡± Camryn was puzzled. Callum amusedly reminded her, ¡°What? Are you not going to buy me dinner anymore? I¡¯m hungry.¡± ¡°Haha. I¡¯m sorry. It slipped my mind. After you, Mr. Callum.¡± Her mother¡¯s arrival interrupted her train of thought. Camryn wondered what her mother had in store for her this time. Was her mother trying to embarrass her at the party or sell her to an old man in exchange for a boost in the family business? Although Camryn no longer pined for her mother¡¯s love, she could not figure out why her mother was so cruel to her. Camryn took her cane and said to her employee. ¡°I¡¯m buying Mr. Callum dinner. Watch the shop. and order yourselves food. Business was good today. You and Louise can enjoy some good food today.¡± They often got the cheapest takeaway. Now that the business was on the right track, and they were making a profit, Camryn thought it was befitting for hemployees to have better meals. Chapter 1293 Chapter 1293 Chapter 1293 ¡°Boss, go and have your dinner with Mr. Callum. I¡¯ll watch the shop.¡± The employee smiled as Camryn and Callum walked out of the shop. Callum waited in the car for Camryn. With thetter handling herself well in her familiar surroundings, it was hard to tell that she was blind, Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. This was the first time Camryn had taken a ride with Callum. She felt her way to the seat, sat tight, put her cane away, and buckled up. passenger¡¯s She did not take the back seat, but not because she did not want to. Callum refused to let her sit in the back because it would appear as though he was her driver. Since Camryn would not dare order a certain York around like a driver, she sat in the passenger¡¯s seat. The passenger seat was not the safest ce to be. It was a good thing Callum was steady behind the wheel. He was not the kind to put the pedal to the metal. She did feel somewhat safe to take a ride in his car. ¡°Where are we going to have dinner?¡± while starting the engine, Callum asked. ¡°I would usually order takeaway, and I find the food at Exotic vors pretty good. Let¡¯s go there.¡± She could afford the food there, so Callum could feel free to order whatever he wanted. Camryn wanted to be generous with Callum since it was her treat. ¡°Alright.¡± Exotic vors was not too far away. It was only a five¨Cminute drive. They arrived at the restaurant before Callum had a chance to ask about the social event. ¡°Let¡¯s look for a table on the first floor,¡± Callum uttered, considering that it was hard for Camryn to go up and down the stairs. He would probably scare Camryn if he went one step too far to carry her upstairs. He might even get pped and be called an *sshole. Camryn responded with a grin, ¡°You can decide.¡± After Callum led Camryn into the restaurant, the server warmly ushered them to a table that was away from the crowd. ¡°Mr. Callum, feel free to order more tonight.¡± Camryn gave her pocket a pat. She brought extra cash out this time. Callum said with a smile, ¡°We won¡¯t have a lot since it¡¯s only the two of us. We can order about the same amount asst time.¡± Sure, he helped bring business to Camryn, but he was not the type to go too far at ying trick¡¯s on her. Callum had to dangle the carrot at her, so she would dly allow him to take advantage of her for life. It was all about timing. He did not want to rush into things. Camryn had given Callum the green light to order anything off the menu, so it was his business if he chose not to. Anyway, she had done her due diligence to pick up the tab. After Callum ordered the food, he asked, ¡°Why does your mom want to take you to the event. tomorrow?¡± As far as he knew, Mrs. Newman would rather go no¨Ccontact with Camryn. She never took Camryn to socialize around in case Camryn stole the limelight from Carrie. Carrie was caught by the authorities for hiring people to hurt his sister¨Cinw, Serenity had proof to send Carrie away. Mrs. Newman must hate Callum¡¯s sister¨Cinw and Camryn. The olddy believed Camryn was the reason all this happened. ¡°God knows what she¡¯s up to.¡± Camryn had a feeling that her mother was out to get her, but nothing had happened thus far. For all she knew, her mother might sell her off. ¡°Are you going? Your mom seems forceful about it. She¡¯s going to make you go even if you don¡¯t want to.¡± With Callum reaching out to remove Camryn¡¯s sunsses, Camryn was startled. She snatched the sunsses from Callum¡¯s hands and put them back on. Chapter 1294 Chapter 1294 Chapter 1294 ¡°Can you see just a little?¡± Callum sat right next to Camryn. By right, Camryn would not be so precise as to snatch the sunsses out of Callum¡¯s hands since she could not see. ¡°You¡¯re sitting next to me, so I can gauge the distance from your scent to retrieve my sunsses. Well, I hope I can see a little, but too bad, I can see nothing.¡± Her world was only a single shade of ckness. ¡°You look good without your sunsses.¡± Callumplimented her looks. ¡°Do you think my mom is trying to use my looks for something, Mr. Callum?¡± ¡°I think you already have an idea. It¡¯s easy to carry a conversation with intelligent people. You get what I¡¯m trying to say without me getting into it.¡± Nana picked Camryn out of all the women to be his wife, so she clearly was not some bimbo. Although upbringing and history did not matter to Nana when it came to selecting her future granddaughter¨Cinw, one of Nana¡¯s criteria was a good IQ level. They needed wits to survive in this dog¨Ceat¨Cdog society. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I will also be attending tomorrow night¡¯s event, and so will Zachary and his wife. My sister¨Cinw adores you and sees you as a friend. She won¡¯t let anything happen to you. You can just go with your mom,¡± Callum said. ¡°No matter what, you¡¯re the daughter of the Newman family. You should be active in social engagements and run in the circle.¡± Camryn would have to socialize and rub shoulders with the upper crust when she married into the York family. His sister¨Cinw, Serenity, had been attending various social gatherings with Mrs. Stone to work on her social skills for Zachary¡¯s sake. ¡°I don¡¯t want to be a part of that circle, nor do I see the need to. The daughter of the Newman family? Well, everybody knows what¡¯s up. I don¡¯t need anybody¡¯s sympathy.¡± Those people would only look at her with sympathy in their eyes. Pity was thest thing Camryn needed. Her father was no more, and her mother could not care less about her. Yet, Camryn was doing well for herself. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. She may not earn much, but she had enough to cover her expenses while being able to put some money in the bank. Although her savings were not a lot, she was happy she could save a few thousand dors by living frugally. Camryn was blind after all. She did not have to be dependent on the care of others. Camryn could sustain and support herself, and that itself was an achievement for her. Should one day she could take back what belonged to her father¡­ That was something to expect in the long run. Camryn hade a long way, ying the patience game. The priority now was to treat her eyes. She would continue to y blind when she could see again while collecting evidence behind the scenes. Once she had enough hard evidence and had the means, Camryn would take back everything that was her father¡¯s¡­ Also, Camryn wanted to know if Dad died of depression and suicide or murder. Callum quietly stared at her. The girl was like a rose. Sometimes, she protected herself by hiding behind the thorns. That reminded him of the bouquet he bought. It slipped Callum¡¯s mind that he had brought the flowers with him into the restaurant. Picking up the bouquet, he presented it to Camryn. ¡°Mr. Callum?¡± Catching a floral scent, Camryn gently pushed away the bouquet. ¡°For you. I hope the flowers can brighten up your day.¡± The tenderness in his voice nearly broke down Camryn¡¯s walls. As far as she could remember, the nicest person to her was her aunt. However, her aunt married to a far away ce when she was in elementary school. Oh, there was a nanny too, but her mother fired her soon after. Chapter 1295 Chapter 1295 Chapter 1295 Camryn also had a younger brother who was protective of her, but it onlysted for a few years. Her mother went so far as to enroll her brother in a boarding school to stop contact between them. Her mother got rid of anybody who was good to her. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say the bouquet was for your fianc¨¦e?¡± Callum said with a smile, ¡°Have you ever heard about me getting engaged? I just made that up to fool your mom.¡± Although Camryn was impaired in sight, she paid attention to the gossip about the wealthiest family in the city. Sure enough, she had never caught wind of an engagement. The only person who was tied down by a woman was Mr. Zachary, and his wife was Serenity. After Serenity lent Camryn a hand, Mr. Zachary even told her stepfather that Serenity hit it off with her. Her stepfather had since been kinder to her. Camryn¡¯s stepfather treated her poorly in the past. While he would not torture or pick on her like her mom, her stepfather would keep mum whenever her mom and Carrie did anything to her.. He was a non¨Cparticipating enabler and aplice. ¡°Well, I won¡¯t refund you the money though.¡± Callumughed. ¡°It¡¯s fine.¡± He then added, ¡°Sometimes, you appear unworldly like the material things do not matter to you. Other times, you can be quite the miser.¡± ¡°Money is a great servant but a bad master. You¡¯re born into privilege, so you will never understand the passion I have for turning a profit.¡± Callum had no words. He was interested in making money too. The only difference was he was making the big bucks. A few hundred dors was nothing to him. Zachary and his wife shared the most intimate moments when the sun went down. Serenity came out of the bathroom to find Zachary had washed himself. He was leaning against the herdboard and waiting for her. Approaching with a smile, she climbed onto the bed and drew close to kiss his cheek. ¡°Babe, you¡¯re done with the showers faster than I am.¡± ¡°I showered in your room.¡± Zachary wrapped his arms around her before turning to tower over her. He was after something more than snuggling. ¡°Let¡¯s have a chat, babe.¡± Serenity tilted her head to stop Zachary from kissing her lips. Giving up on sealing her breath, he slid his lips across her face for butterfly kisses. Serenity put her hands over his mouth. Zachary pulled away her hands and pinned her down, insisting that they locked tongues before he let her go. He asked, ¡°What do you want to talk about?¡± ¡°Get off me. You¡¯re heavy.¡± Serenity nudged him away. Zachary grinned and pecked her lips before turning over to sit by her side. He rested against the headboard like before. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°We can chat about whatever you want.¡± Zachary pulled her upright and pulled the covers over their legs. ¡°My aunt asked if we¡¯re expecting when I was there today.¡± Zachary furrowed his brows. ¡°It will happen when it happens. My family isn¡¯t pressuring us, but Aunt Audrey seems eager.¡± He was not keen on Mrs. Stone putting pressure on Serenity. Chapter 1296 Chapter 1296 Chapter 1296 Zachary¡¯s family did not want to put the strain on Serenity. Mrs. Stone was Serenity¡¯s aunt and a senior on Serenity¡¯s side of the family. She should be showing more love and affection to Serenity. ¡°Aunt Audrey wasn¡¯t trying to push me into having a baby. Her heart is in the right ce. We have been a real married couple for a few months now, but I¡¯m not pregnant yet. I think it¡¯s normal she¡¯d ask.¡± Sticking her hand out, Serenity gave him a squeeze on the cheek and smoothen his puckered brows. She said, ¡°Don¡¯t make that wry face. Your frown is scary enough to startle your timid wife. ¡°You can be a ghost for Halloween with that face. No makeup required.¡± Amused by her remark, Zachary flicked her forehead. ¡°Have you seen such a handsome ghost? If you¡¯re timid, then theres no one with nerves of steel in the world. ¡°Fine. I¡¯m not mad. I think it¡¯s between us whether we want to start a family. Other people shouldn¡¯t stick their noses where they don¡¯t belong. Even my parents aren¡¯t rushing us to have children. Nana is probably the only one with the asionalment about her wish to have a great¨Cgranddaughter. ¡°Nana was looking forward to having a granddaughter, but I guess she can only put her hopes into getting a great¨Cgranddaughter.¡± Serenity rested her head on his shoulder. ¡°I know Nana wants a great¨Cgranddaughter. That¡¯s what I want to talk about, babe. It¡¯s not about the gender, but I can¡¯t even get pregnant. Do you think there¡¯s something wrong with my body? ¡°I mean, I don¡¯t think the problem lies with you. Oh, that reminds me. I heard that frequent sex could affect the chances of conceiving.¡± Zachary was at a loss for words. ¡°I don¡¯t think there¡¯s a problem with your health.¡± Dismissing the part about frequency, Zachary firmly uttered, ¡°We are fit as a fiddle. You aren¡¯t pregnant yet because the time hasn¡¯te. Our future child hasn¡¯te to us. ¡°Our little angel is still finding their way to us. You¡¯ll have buns in the oven before we know it. Don¡¯t worry too much about it.¡± Zachary held his wife tight, not wanting Serenity to me herself for not expecting yet. ¡°Pregnancy is difficult. Your cousin¨Cinw, Alice, has pretty bad morning sickness, so much so that Clive would rather not have the child. Not wanting Serenity to go through the same, Zachary said, ¡°Seren, we don¡¯t have to have a child so soon. Let¡¯s enjoy our moments together as husband and wife for now. ¡°I¡¯ll take you on a trip to Annenburg next weekend. We can use a break.¡± In the end, he kept it in his pants. ( ¡°Oh, next weekend? is it okay to leave work?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not the only person around to run thepany. We have a team of management. Not to mention, my cousins. I¡¯ll only deal with the important matters. N?velDrama.Org is the owner. ¡°Plus, there¡¯s Josh too.¡± Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Mr. Bucham and Jasmine are getting engaged. Then, the wedding preparations wille after the engagement party. They will only be busier. You promise to give Mr. Bucham a two¨Cmonth marital leave.¡± ¡°That¡¯s why we need to travel before his wedding. ¡°Sure.¡± Serenity would like to get to know Jane and Iris. She believed Jane and Iris had a friendship like hers with Jasmine. Since Zachary made time to take her to go on a holiday to Annenburg, she might as well go. ¡°I felt Remy out as you asked. Remy has a thing for Elisa, but he¡¯s not in a rush toe clean about his feelings. He believes Elisa hasn¡¯t really¡­ erm, gotten over the past.¡± Serenity did not sound as surprised as she had expected just as much. She sighed and replied, ¡°Aunt Audrey hoped you could hint to Mr. Johnson that Elisa wouldn¡¯t move away after marriage. I said Mr. Johnson is a great man. Although he¡¯s from Annenburg, he¡¯ll be a permanent resident in Wiltspoon. He¡¯ll be neighbors with my aunt¡¯s family since he bought a house here. ¡°Aunt Audrey said it didn¡¯t change the fact that he was born and raised in Annenburg. Elisa could uproot to Annenburg for all she knew. ¡°She also wanted you to tell Mr. Johnson that she did not want Elisa to go through the pain again.¡± Zachary responded, ¡°Remy only bought the ce because of Elisa¡­ Although he¡¯s from Annenburg, he¡¯s living in Wiltspoon permanently. Plus, he has a house here too. How different is e from a local Wiltspoonian?¡± t would be a shame if Elisa passed up on Remy. Chapter 1297 Chapter 1297 Chapter 1297 Serenity replied, ¡°I think so too, but it¡¯s too early to talk about this. We¡¯ll see how things progress. I believe Elisa has feelings for Remy. My aunt will eventually give her blessing if there¡¯s chemistry between them.¡± Elisa was always true to her feelings. During the time she was in love with Zachary, even when he did not reciprocate her feelings, she boldly pursued him. She would undoubtedly seek her family¡¯s approval if the feeling was mutual with Remy. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about them, honey. They are not children. They can work it out on their own. It¡¯ste. Let¡¯s rest.¡± Zachary lowered his head to give Serenity a smooch on the forehead before whispering affectionately in her ear. ¡°I will practice self-restraint so your body can rest too. I¡¯ll just hold you tonight. I won¡¯t touch you.¡± Lifting her chin, Serenity met his gaze and returned the kiss. They then slept in each other¡¯s arms. She was always the first to doze off. It did not take long for Serenity to wander off into dreand. She was in a deep sleep. Zachary then received a call from Josh. He rejected the call so as not to wake Serenity. Zachary carefully withdrew his arm that was wrapped around Serenity and scooted back to get 1. He walked out of the bedroom and sat down on the sofa in the living room. Hearing themotion, Mrs. Lane opened her bedroom door and popped her head out. ¡°Mrs. Lane, I¡¯m taking a call out here because I don¡¯t want to wake Seren. Everything is fine.¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Oh.¡± Mrs. Lane wound her head back in and closed the door. Josh had sent Zachary a text message before Zachary gave a callback. Come to Julian¡¯s ce.] Josh¡¯s message was to inform Zachary to meet with Julian. Without asking why, Zachary responded favorably. [Sure.] He swiftly rose to his feet and returned to the bedroom for a change of clothes. He drew close to the bed and leaned over to kiss Serenity on the forehead. He tenderly murmured, ¡°Sleep tight, Seren. Several minutester, Jim, along with other bodyguards, waited downstairs. With Zachary appearing in the foyer, they quietly escorted Zachary to his car. ¡°I¡¯m going to meet with Julian,¡± Zachary said in a low voice. The security team now knew the destination. Josh was waiting at the entrance by the time they arrived at the Buchams¡¯ residence. ¡°Zachary,¡± Seeing that Zachary was here, Josh said hello with a smile. Zachary got out of the car and entered the house with Josh. ¡°Any news?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± The pair ended the exchange there and then. Julian was sitting on the sofa in the living room. He got up at the sight of the boys but did not approach Zachary. Julian waited until Zachary was close before saying with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re used to the nightlife, Mr. York. I hope I didn¡¯t ruin your rest by calling you over thiste.¡± Chapter 1298 Chapter 1298 Chapter 1298 Zachary answered in a mild manner, ¡°I¡¯m a nocturnal person. I¡¯m not usually home at this hour.¡± He adjusted his schedule and was in the same time zone as the majority of people in the city after he got married. ¡°Sit,¡± Julian said to Zachary. ¡°This calls for some liquor. I brought out my good alcohol.¡± There was a bottle of liquor and two sses on the coffee table. Judging by the alcohol in the sses, the cousins had been drinking. Zachary rejected. ¡°Thank you, but my wife doesn¡¯t like me drinking. She¡¯s not keen on the alcohol stench. I rarely drink when I go socializing now. Julian was dumbstruck at first, but he soon burst intoughter. ¡°Josh said the power of love has changed you. Now I believe him. You have changed a lot, Mr. York.¡± Zachary was not one to say no to alcohol during business engagements. He took a nce at Josh, smiled, and replied, ¡°Josh doesn¡¯t drink much now either. He stopped smoking too.¡± Josh jumped in. ¡°Jasmine hates the smell of tobo.¡± Julian said, ¡°Can you two be considerate of me? You don¡¯t have to flex your rtionship with me. I don¡¯t even have a girlfriend.¡± The pair turned their gaze to Julian. Josh uttered, ¡°That¡¯s where you¡¯re wrong, Julian. Zachary and I aren¡¯t flexing. He¡¯s an uxorious husband while I¡¯m only taking notes from Zachary about wearing the pants in the house.¡± Julian did not hold back on dashing Josh¡¯s dream. You can forget about wearing the pants. I think your wife will be the one calling the shots.¡± Now that Josh and Jasmine¡¯s engagement wasing up, Jasmine was already a part of the family in the Buchams¡¯ eyes. ¡°Zachary and I are out of the singleton market. It¡¯s your turn next. Your parents must be worried sick when you¡¯re going to tie the knot. Tell us what your type is. We can rmend someone suited for you.¡± Josh fervently asked Julian about his type because Jasmine was interested to know. The way Jasmine saw it, Julian was a great mystery to unravel. He was discreet yet bad*ss. Jasmine was intrigued by the sort of woman who could win Julian¡¯s heart. Picking up his ss, Julian took a sip and replied with a smile, ¡°I don¡¯t know what type of woman I am into. I¡¯m not interested in all the women I¡¯ve met. ¡°It¡¯ll happen when it happens. I¡¯ll marry when the right persones along. If no one makes my heart flutter, I don¡¯t mind enjoying my bachelor life. Julian carried the attitude that love woulde when it was written in the stars. Of course, he was annoyed by his elders¡¯ pressure to marry. Hence why he became a night owl, resting during the day and being active during the night. He could escape his parents¡¯ constant nagging.N?velDrama.Org is the owner. His family grew anxious since Josh, who was younger than Julian by a few years, was going to get married. Julian did not even have a girlfriend. Julian¡¯s mother wished she knew what was going on in the minds of the boys of Julian¡¯s age. A lot of men were not considering marriage despite being in their thirties. Apparently, Julian and Duncan were in the same boat. Putting down his ss, Julian pulled out a yellow file from under the coffee table. He handed the file to Zachary and said, ¡°I¡¯ve looked into the matter as requested. I¡¯ve investigated and sorted out her connections. ¡°You can read the file here. It¡¯s better if the file doesn¡¯t leave this ce. These people have a knack for surveince. I¡¯m concerned that the documents might be lost in your hands. The n for you and Josh now is to stay put until we can catch them red-handed.¡± With a solemn look, Zachary took the file and gruffly uttered, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll take a look.¡± He had a great memory. Zachary could retain the vital information from reading the first time and memorize the whole thing after scanning through it another few times. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mr. York. I will oversee the matter from start to finish. Once you smoke them out, we can get them once and for all. They should¡¯ve faced thew when their boss was caught years ago. ¡°They fled and were in hiding for many years, and now they had made something of themselves.¡± Zachary opened the file and pulled out Julian¡¯s investigation report. It included background checks and photos of multiple individuals so that Zachary could remember their faces. ¡°Also, that Jessica girl is bait. Just keep an eye on her, but you need to be very careful. They have been watching the girl for a long time. They will sense something is amiss when you start to get a closer look at Jessica.¡± Chapter 1299 Chapter 1299 Chapter 1299 Zachary read the documents three times before quietly putting the papers in order and slipping them back into the file. He then handed the file to Julian and thanked him. ¡°It never urred to me that they would use the Yates girl,¡± Zachary callously remarked. ¡°Liberty brought it up to me because she thought it was strange. That got me thinking. It was strange indeed. She never wanted Hank to see Sonny before, but now she visits with Hank and tries to be friendly with Sonny.¡± They had a sneaking suspicion that Mr. Newman and his wife were in on it. They also suspected that it must be someone Zachary had offended. To everybody¡¯s surprise, Jessica was the pawn in this game. Since the Browns were rted by blood to Sonny, the family¡¯s attempt to be nice to Sonny did not raise any suspicion. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°They¡¯re not trying to get even with you, Mr. York. It¡¯s your wife they are after, but you had her surrounded by security. Your wife can fight too. They wouldn¡¯t try anything in broad daylight since you¡¯re a man of status and power. That was probably why they tried to get to your wife through her nephew. ¡°As far as I know, your wife practically raised her nephew. Your wife is close with him, so she¡¯ll be more than willing to meet their demands to see them alone if her nephew ends up in their hands. Now that Julian got the whole story, he had to say that these people were great at ying mind games. ¡°They had tried to use your wife¡¯s rtives, but they forewent the idea probably because her rtives were unreliable and couldn¡¯t produce results.¡± Serenity¡¯s rtives were all talk and no action. They could do nothing in the face of powerful people. The Hunts had tried to rece Serenity as Mrs. York with a stic version, but that turned out to be a bust. Serenity found out about their n, and Zachary foiled it. Harriet, who went under the knife, had her face altered to be exactly the same as another cousin. The cousin¡¯s husband mistook Harriet for his wife, and a kerfuffle ensued. Harriet and that cousin had since turned on each other. Now, Harriet had to go for another stic surgery. Anyway, the Hunts did not amount to anything. They did more harm than good. ¡°I¡¯ll hand the information on these people to the police tomorrow. The authorities will handle the arrest. But these people are sly. I doubt they can be captured all at once. Just watch your backs, for now, Mr. York.¡± Julian did not let Zachary take the documents away because it was not safe. It was time to hand over the case to the police as these people were once the henchmen of a crime lord. Their records were not squeaky clean. ¡°Thank you, Julian. We¡¯ll be careful.¡± Zachary thanked Julian. Julian said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t stress over it too much. I won¡¯t let anything happen to you. They might try again in the next few days. I¡¯m guessing they would pick the uing holiday. People will be out and about during the festive holiday. The crowd will make it a perfect cover for them to strike and run away. ¡°Just carry on with your ns. They might have eyes on you, but I¡¯ve got people watching them too. Julian¡¯s remark gave Zachary assurance. He showed his appreciation toward Julian repeatedly. ¡°It¡¯s not like we just knew each other, Mr. York. Don¡¯t mention it. You and Josh are best friends, so you¡¯re my friend too.¡± Josh gleefully chimed in, ¡°You should thank me, Zachary. I told my cousin to help you.¡± ¡°Thank you.¡± Josh grinned. ¡°That¡¯s it? Can¡¯t you give me something to work on? How about an extra month off for my martial leave?¡± Zachary said, ¡°Aren¡¯t two months enough? What? Are you going to quit your job just because you¡¯re getting married?¡± ¡°It¡¯s just two months. Make it three. I¡¯m happy to ept two and a half months too. Zachary looked at him resignedly. Chapter 1300 Chapter 1300 Chapter 1300 ¡°How about six months?¡± ¡°Oh, I¡¯ll take it!¡± Julian said with a smile, ¡°Why don¡¯t you take maternity leave too? Mr. York, just leave him. Give him the two-month marital leave and not a day more. Let me know if he doesn¡¯te back to work when the two months are up. I¡¯ll tie him up and deliver him to you.¡± ¡°Hey, I¡¯m your family, you know.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t even care if it¡¯s my brother. Besides, you¡¯re only my cousin.¡± Josh remarked, ¡°I can¡¯t depend on you for anything.¡± He was joking, of course. The two-month marital leave was more than enough. Since Jasmine, Serenity, and Elisa were working together on a project right now, Jasmine was focused on making it work and turning a profit. Julian finished the liquor and said, ¡°It¡¯ste, Mr. York. You should go back and rest.¡± Zachary stood up and expressed his gratitude to Julian once more before Josh saw him out. Several minutester, Zachary¡¯s fleet of vehicles left the Buchams¡¯ residence. It was getting deeper into the night. The darkest moment would soon wee light. With the sun rising, a new day hade. Instead of opening for business today, Serenity went to help out at her sister¡¯s diner first thing in N?velDrama.Org is the owner. the morning. Once at All You Can Eat, Serenity noticed her nephew lying down on two chairs put together to sleep. Feeling sorry, Serenity said to her sister, ¡°Why don¡¯t you and Sonny move to my ce? Sonny can sleep in when you¡¯re up early. He doesn¡¯t have to wake up with you. ¡°He¡¯s at a growing age. Theck of sleep would affect his development.¡± Liberty was making broth. She woulde early to the diner every morning to prepare a new batch of broth. ¡°I¡¯ll only wake you since I get up bright early, I¡¯ll talk to Sonny and see if he wants to stay with you, but I¡¯m not going to move there.¡± There was bound to be noise when Liberty got ready in the morning. Liberty would feel bad for waking her sister and brother-inw up. Zachary was already busy as it was, so he did not need theck of sleep added to his problems. ¡°What do you fancy eating, Seren?¡± Liberty asked her sister since she was making breakfast for herself. ¡°Does Zachary know that you¡¯re here? I think he¡¯s not working today, right? You should keep himpany since you both are not working. ¡°I want tomato basil pasta with bacon bits. It has been a while since I had that since Zachary doesn¡¯t eat bacon and basil.¡± Serenity helped her sister in the kitchen. There were people on the streets right now. Soon, customers would being into the diner for breakfast. Many majorpanies were closed for business today. However, the workers at smaller factories were rushing production due to orders. They could not catch a break during the weekends either. All You Can Eat was well-known for its broth and various menu items. Although the diner had not been operating for long, Liberty had a lot of regrs and repeat customers. Other shop owners on the same street enjoyed breakfast at Liberty¡¯s diner too, leaving the operators of other restaurants around jealous. Still, they had no guts to kick up a fuss at All You Can Eat as security had been added to the street. They had also observed that things did not end well for those who stirred trouble in All You Can Eat. The only thing they could do was wallow in their envy. Chapter 1301 Chapter 1301 Chapter 1301 ¡°Sure.¡± One to satisfy her sister¡¯s ptes, Liberty made pasta with bacon bits. Liberty added basil to her sister¡¯s te, but she had none of that. ¡°The food is ready.¡± Liberty called her sister over to grab her te. Serenity put a pause on work and went to wash her hands before taking her portion. The sister sat down at the table. As usual, Serenity pulled out her phone and scrolled the news while eating. ¡°No phone during mealtimes. Put away your phone.¡± Liberty had rules during mealtimes. ¡°I was just looking.¡± Although Serenity said so, she slipped the phone back into her pocket. ¡°I don¡¯t want to see you on your phone while at the dining table anymore.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Serenity could never defy her sister. Besides, screens during mealtimes were a bad habit. ¡°Are you really noting with me to the event tonight, Liberty?¡± ¡°Nope.¡± ¡°I think you should broaden your horizons, Liberty.¡± Liberty took her time with the pasta. Since the food was fresh out of the pan, it was a little hot. ¡°I don¡¯t need to broaden my horizons. At least, I¡¯m not at that point yet. You¡¯re different. You¡¯re the missus of the York family. You need to adapt to their circle.¡± Serenity gave up since no amount of words could convince her sister toe along. Liberty refused to go when Aunt Audrey invited her as a plus-one. ¡°When are you getting your car?¡± Liberty bought a car for less than a hundred thousand dors yesterday. Elisa told her to pick something of better value, but Liberty said no. She bought apact MPV. ¡°In a few days.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± While the sisters were chatting during breakfast, Duncan arrived at the diner. It was a wonder that he came earlier than Liberty¡¯s workers. The him though. ¡°You¡¯re early, Mr. Lewis.¡± Putting down her cutleries, Liberty got up and approached Duncan. She asked with a smile, ¡°Are you not taking the day off today, Mr. Lewis? What would you like?¡± Seeing that Serenity was around, Duncan gave Serenity a nod and nced at Liberty¡¯s unfinished pasta. He said, ¡°I can wait for you to be done with your breakfast. I¡¯m off today. The same old for me.¡± Still, Liberty went on to make him food. Duncan went over, took a seat at the table next to Serenity¡¯s, and struck up a conversation. ¡°I see Zachary isn¡¯t with you.¡± ¡°He barely gets any day off, so he should sleep in. Serenity believed she was right in the money about Duncan as Duncan came to have breakfast at her sister¡¯s diner even during his day off. However, Duncan was still in denial. ¡°Do you always have breakfast at my sister¡¯s when you don¡¯t need to go to the office?¡± N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Duncan replied, ¡°It¡¯s hard to break out of a routine. Serenity opened her mouth, but no words escaped her lips. ¡°Is Sonny still sleeping?¡± Duncan turned his attention to Sonny. ¡°Yeah. He¡¯s still asleep.¡± Duncan stopped talking. Chapter 1302 Chapter 1302 Chapter 1302 Duncan and Serenity did not have a lot inmon to talk about. With Serenity here, Duncan could not have a private moment with Liberty. After Liberty made him his order, customers starteding into the diner. Nevertheless, the menu items ordered were already made in advance, so the workers could serve the customers without needing the boss to be in the kitchen. Liberty went back to her spot and continued her breakfast. ¡°Duncan.¡± The voice made Duncan lose his appetite. Liberty and Serenity turned their heads and watched a beautiful woman walk through the opened ss door. Serenity did not recognize Lily, but Liberty had seen a picture of Lily before. Liberty thought Lily looked better in person than in the picture. Lily made a good match with Duncan. ¡°Ms. Harmon, would you like something to eat?¡± Liberty put down her utensils and got up to serve the customer. Lily moved her gaze from Duncan to Liberty. She had observed Liberty a few times in the dark, and this was the first time she hade face-to-face with her. Lily thought Liberty was quite a gorgeousdy. ¡°I heard the food here is amazing. Can I have the same as Duncan? Thank you.¡± Lily then strutted to Duncan¡¯s table and put aside her limited-edition handbag. She pulled out a few tissues to wipe the chair before sitting down. With Serenity looking at Lily, thetter said hello with a smile, ¡°Good morning, Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Morning.¡± Serenity had no idea who the woman was, but the woman seemed to know who she was. Serenity should respond to the kind greeting. Her sister addressed the beautiful woman as Ms. Harmon. When did Liberty get to know her? Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Serenity had attended many social engagements with Mrs. Stone and met many wives of wealthy men and heiresses. Through socializing, Serenity developed a trained eye to tell that Lily was highborn. She carried herself with such grace. ¡°Mrs. York, my name is Lily, Lily Harmon.¡± Lily introduced herself. ¡°Hello, Ms. Harmon.¡± Lily smiled and ended the engagement there. She had always wanted to befriend Serenity, but she and Serenity were not close yet. It was an appropriate setting to say hello and introduce herself so that Serenity could remember her name. There would always be opportunities to develop their friendship in the future. Duncan asked, ¡°Why are you here?¡± It was only seven o¡¯clock right now. Was Lily here to spy on him? Duncan had not moved back home yet and was still an unwanted guest at Zachary¡¯s vi. By right, there was no way Lily could track him down unless she were waiting nearby, knowing he would have his usual breakfast at Liberty¡¯s diner. He guessed it right. Nevertheless, it was not Lily who had been spying on him. It was his mother. Mrs. Lewis had ced people around the area so she was the first to know when her people spotted Duncan from a mile away. Mrs. Lewis then informed Lily to go over. Lily was a disciplined person. She would go for a run and exercise at dawn every day. Mrs. Lewis also housed her in one of Duncan¡¯s properties not too far from Lewis & Co. It was easy and quick for Lily to get here. ¡°I¡¯m here because you¡¯re here,¡± Lily answered matter-of-factly as he looked and tilted her head at Duncan. Duncanmented, ¡°So long as you¡¯re fine with it.¡± ¡°What am I to say when your stomach can take the food? Did you forget that I started from the bottom too?¡± Lily started out at the lowest level in thepany. No one knew she was the boss¡¯s daughter. She handled the most tiringbor at the lowest wages. Her basic necessities were no different than any regr employee¡¯s. Before she rose through the ranks in thepany, Lily had to sneak home in case others might find out that she was the boss¡¯s daughter. She would usually rent the cheapest apartment or share with other tenants to get a better ce. Duncan answered, ¡°Oh, I didn¡¯t know that. Mayne my mom told me, but I didn¡¯t pay much attention.¡± He had met Lily when they were younger, but she was not someone he regarded as part of his group of friends. Duncan would not have known that she was her mother¡¯s best friend¡¯s daughter if he did not run into Lily during her trip to Wiltspoon. She had always wanted to befriend Serenity, but she and Serenity were not close yet. It was an appropriate setting to say hello and introduce herself so that Serenity could remember her name. There would always be opportunities to develop their friendship in the future. Duncan asked, ¡°Why are you here?¡± It was only seven o¡¯clock right now. Was Lily here to spy on him? Duncan had not moved back home yet and was still an unwanted guest at Zachary¡¯s vi. By right, there was no way Lily could track him down unless she were waiting nearby, knowing he would have his usual breakfast at Liberty¡¯s diner. He guessed it right. Nevertheless, it was not Lily who had been spying on him. It was his mother. Mrs. Lewis had ced people around the area so she was the first to know when her people spotted Duncan from a mile away. Mrs. Lewis then informed Lily to go over. Lily was a disciplined person. She would go for a run and exercise at dawn every day. Mrs. Lewis also housed her in one of Duncan¡¯s properties not too far from Lewis & Co. It was easy and quick for Lily to get here. ¡°I¡¯m here because you¡¯re here,¡± Lily answered matter-of-factly as he looked and tilted her head at Duncan. Duncanmented, ¡°So long as you¡¯re fine with it ¡°What am I to say when your stomach can take the food? Did you forget that I started from the bottom too?¡± Lily started out at the lowest level in thepany. No one knew she was the boss¡¯s daughter. She handled the most tiringbor at the lowest wages. Her basic necessities were no different than any regr employee¡¯s. Before she rose through the ranks in thepany, Lily had to sneak home in case others might find out that she was the boss¡¯s daughter. She would usually rent the cheapest apartment or share with other tenants to get a better ce. Duncan answered, ¡°Oh, I didn¡¯t know that. Mayne my mom told me, but I didn¡¯t pay much attention.¡± He had met Lily when they were younger, but she was not someone he regarded as part of his group of friends. Duncan would not have known that she was her mother¡¯s best friend¡¯s daughter if he did not run into Lily during her trip to Wiltspoon. Chapter 1303 Chapter 1303 Chapter 1303 Lily was not at all offended. She and Duncan had long known each other, but there was barely any interaction between them. More urately, they never really hung out together. It was not strange that Duncan had little knowledge of her past. ¡°Here you go, Ms. Harmon.¡± Liberty made the food and brought over Lily¡¯s order. She put it in front of Lily and said with a smile, ¡°Enjoy, Ms. Harmon.¡± Lily gave Liberty a smile. Liberty returned to her seat. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°How did you get to know her, Liberty?¡± Serenity whispered. ¡°Mrs. Lewis came by the other day and had a chat with me. She told me she was trying to pair Ms. Harmon and Mr. Lewis up. She showed me Ms. Harmon¡¯s picture, and that was how I recognized |_ her.¡± Liberty kept her voice down when replying to her sister. She added. ¡°Don¡¯t you think they make a cute couple? It feels rxing to be around her. She doesn¡¯t have the arrogance of the upper crust.¡± Serenity looked into her sister¡¯s eyes before burying her head in her food. She murmured, ¡°They do look good together.¡± Aunt Audrey said that Mrs. Lewis was not the easiest to get along with. Zachary mentioned it too. Maybe it was a good thing that Mrs. Lewis had a candidate for a daughter-inw in mind. She wanted Ms. Harmon and Duncan to get together At least, her sister did not get caught up in it. ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny sat up after waking up. Out of habit, he called out to his mother. Down to herst mouthful of pasta, Serenity told Liberty, ¡°I¡¯ll make Sonny something to eat. That should give you time to finish your breakfast, Liberty. It¡¯s only going to get busier.¡± She made her way toward her nephew and picked him up. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny was still in a daze from waking up. Hanging onto Serenity by the nape of her neck, Sonny rested his head against Serenity¡¯s shoulder and mewed, ¡°Aunt Ser, I want to pee.¡± Serenity carried him into the washroom. By the time they got out of the washroom, Sonny could walk on his two feet. With his gaze falling on Duncan, the boy courteously said hello. Sonny had never met Lily, so his bright eyes sparkled at the woman before he showed his gentlemanly side. ¡°Hello, ma¡¯am.¡± Lily reached out to stroke his head with a smile. ¡°You must be Sonny. You¡¯re so adorable. I¡¯m Lily Harmon, a friend of Duncan.¡± ¡°Hello, Ms. Harmon.¡± Sonny greeted her. Shyness seemed to sink in as he quickly took shelter by Liberty. Liberty carried him onto herp. ¡°What do you want to eat, Sonny? Your aunt will make it for you.¡± Sonny fell into thought before answering in a soft voice, ¡°Egg and soldiers.¡± Serenity asked her sister, ¡°Do you have bread here?¡± ¡°Yeah, I do. Sonny normally has eggs and soldiers for breakfast. I would make dippy eggs every day and some customers would order it even though it¡¯s not on the menu.¡± Serenity put a pot over the stove and said, ¡°I¡¯ll make it for him then.¡± With Liberty cleaning her te, she put her son on Serenity¡¯s seat and cleared the table. She said, Stay here and don¡¯t run around, Sonny. Your aunt will be back with your breakfast. We have customers, so I¡¯ll be a little busy.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Sonny obediently replied. It was morning rush hour as it was a little over seven o¡¯clock. Many who worked during the weekend arrived in droves for breakfast. Liberty only grew busier. Serenity made her nephew breakfast. Seeing that Sonny was capable of feeding himself, she went on to assist her sister. Duncan and Lily left together after finishing their breakfast, Truth be told, Duncan wanted to stay but chose to leave since Lily was here. Liberty did not even notice when he left as she was swamped with orders. Chapter 1304 Chapter 1304 Chapter 1304 While it was a cooking spree at Liberty¡¯s diner, Zachary woke up back at home and as always before opening his eyes, he turned to his side and reached out to hold his wife. s, all he grabbed was air. Zachary opened his eyes. Serenity was no longer in the room. He looked at the sky outside. The sun was high. Turning over, Zachary grabbed his phone on the bedside table to look at the time. Enter title¡­ ¡°Nine o¡¯clock?!¡± He jolted up. Even during the weekend, Zachary had never gotten up thiste. Maybe he came home a little tootest night. Zachary washed up and got dressed in record time. He even picked an outfit Serenity had bought for him. He opened the bedroom door to find Mrs. Lane watching TV on the sofa with a cat on herp. With the door swinging open, Mrs. Lane cocked her head to look at him. She then rose to her feet and said with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re awake, Mr. Zachary. Should I get a start on breakfast?¡± ¡°It¡¯s after nine now.¡± Zachary mumbled as he walked out of the room. ¡°You should have something to eat even though it¡¯s nine. Before going out, the missus said that you must have breakfast when you get up.¡± ¡®Where¡¯s Serenity? When did she get up? What time did she leave?¡± Zachary was not too happy about that. His wife disappeared on the day he was not working. She did not even wait for him to wake up or have breakfast with him. It was as if his wife gave him the snub. The entrance was pushed open before Mrs. Lane could reply. Serenity was back. ¡°You¡¯re up, Zachary.¡± Serenity entered the house and greeted her husband before closing the door behind her. Without responding to her, Zachary pulled a long face and turned on his heel to march back into the bedroom. She ditched him first thing in the morning, and now that she was home, Serenity was back to calling him by his name instead of with a term of endearment. Already displeased that his wife abandoned him, Zachary grew discontent and went to sulk in the room. He was throwing a fit. It did not ur to Serenity at first. She was dumbstruck that Zachary turned around and headed for the bedroom. She went to ask Mrs. Lane,¡± What¡¯s up with Zachary, Mrs. Lane? Who made him mad?¡± Mrs. Lane nced at the bedroom door as Zachary mmed the door hard. Amused, she told Serenity, ¡°Mr. Zachary is angry at you.¡± ¡°Me?¡± Serenity remarked in confusion, ¡°I left early in the morning. I don¡¯t remember winding him up. Tell me, Mrs. Lane. How did I drive him up the wall? You know, Zachary. He¡¯s the pettiest. It scares me when he¡¯s mad.¡± She spoke in hushed tones so as not to upset Zachary even more. It was Serenity¡¯s worst fear when the man kicked up a fuss over seemingly nothing. In the past, the cause of the couple¡¯s silent treatment was Zachary¡¯s tantrums that came out of nowhere. With Serenity left scratching her head, the conflict only deepened. In the end, they would not speak to each other. After the big hoo-ha of his secreting out and the couple getting back together, it had been a while since he gave an attitude and sulked. Oops. She better not let Zachary find out what she said of him. Sometimes, Serenity believed she should switch ces with Zachary. The women were usually the ones to throw tantrums, but Zachary was the pouty one between them both. Zachary may appear mature and handsome, but in the world of love, Serenity had never met anyone who had more fits than Zachary. With Mrs. Lane letting go of the cat, the cat stayed by Serenity¡¯s feet, refusing to leave.N?velDrama.Org is the owner. Chapter 1305 Chapter 1305 Chapter 1305 Serenity bent over to hold the cat up. ¡°Missus, you might want to sweet-talk Mr. Zachary. He hasn¡¯t eaten anything since he got up.¡± Mrs. Lane had no words for her boss¡¯s sudden tantrum. She would not know Zachary had a childish side to him if she did not work here. While stroking the cat, Serenity remarked, ¡°Mrs. Lane, you must let me know why he¡¯s angry before I can calm him down. I didn¡¯t do anything.¡± Mrs. Lane whispered, ¡°I think Mr. Zachary is angry that you went out early in the morning. He must be hoping you would spend time with him since he¡¯s home for the weekend.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I went to help my sister at her diner¡­ Although it¡¯s the weekend, many factories are not closed. The workers still went to work. My sister¡¯s breakfast ce was going to be packed, so I left early to help her. But I came home early. I¡¯m back before ten o¡¯clock.¡± It did not cross her mind that Zachary would sulk over a trivial matter. Mrs. Lane was at a loss for words. ¡°I¡¯ll go in and cheer him up.¡± Knowing what her man was like, Serenity helplessly carried the cat into the room. It struck Mrs. Lane to remind Serenity from taking the cat into the room when Serenity walked through the door. s, it was toote. Mrs. Lane guessed it would only put Mr. Zachary in a worse mood. Serenity set foot into the bedroom with the cat in her arms. Zachary stood behind a window with his back facing the bedroom door. He did not turn around when the door was pushed open. Serenity drew close and stood next to him, admiring the view outside the window with him. She asked, ¡°What are you looking at?¡± Tilting his head, Zachary moved his gaze to her, only to find she was holding a cat. He furrowed his brows and made a sharp turn to take strides away from the window. ¡°Babe.¡± Serenity followed right behind him. ¡°You were still sleeping when I got up. I thought I should let you sleep in since you¡¯re always busy with work. That was why I didn¡¯t wake you. I didn¡¯t go anywhere. I just went to help my sister. ¡°I thought you might wake up at this hour, so I hurried home. It¡¯s still busy at my sister¡¯s diner. I didn¡¯t want you to wake up without me by your side. I rushed home.¡± Serenity did not stop walking when she tried to exin. Zachary stopped, turned around, and locked eyes with her. He asked, ¡°Do you love me, Serenity?¡± It had been a while since he addressed her by her name. He would usually call her ¡°Seren¡±. Serenity moaned in her mind. ¡®Don¡¯t tell me he¡¯s kicking up a fuss with me because of this?¡± Still, she took no time to consider an answer. ¡°I do. I love you, Zachary. I love you.¡± Her quick reply softened the hard edges across his face. Still, he kept a straight face and said in a hurt voice, ¡°Do you really love me though? Why can¡¯t you remember that I hate furry animals if you love me? You even carried it into my room.¡± Serenity was speechless. She lowered her head for a look. ¡°Oh!¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Embarrassed, she said, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Zachary. I forgot I have the cat in my arms. I¡¯ll carry it out right away. Don¡¯t worry. I have been holding it the whole time, so the fur will only be stuck to me. I promise you no furs in your room. She quickly carried the ragdoll out of there. Despite the cat being beautiful and cute, Zachary could not warm up to the furry little thing. He even questioned her love because she brought the cat into the bedroom. Sigh. After bringing the ragdoll out, Serenity put the cat on the ground, got up, and said to Mrs. Lane, Why didn¡¯t you warn me that I was still holding the cat, Mrs. Lane? Your boss can be so anal. He¡¯s already having a fit, but now he¡¯s questioning whether my love for him is true just because I brought the cat in.¡± Chapter 1306 Chapter 1306 Chapter 1306 ¡°When¡¯s Nanaing back? I miss her so much.¡± Serenity missed the days when the old woman lived with them. Mrs. Lane said, ¡°It was toote by the time I wanted to remind you. You already pushed the door Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. and went in. Serenity sighed again. ¡°I¡¯ll go wash my hands.¡± She washed her hands twice with antibacterial soap and went back to the room where she used to sleep. She then took a set of clean clothes from the closet and changed before she re-entered the master bedroom. ¡°Babe, I washed my hands twice with antibacterial soap and changed my clothes too. There won¡¯t be a single cat fur on my body.¡± Serenity walked behind Zachary and reached out to encircle his waist. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, okay? I really just forgot that I was holding the cat. In fact, they¡¯re really cute, and you were the one who gave them to me. I treasure everything that you give me. You said you¡¯d treasure it even if I gave you grass, and it¡¯s the same for me. I¡¯ll treasure whatever you give me.¡± Zachary did not turn around and let her hug his waist. He said, ¡°When I woke up and didn¡¯t see you, I asked Mrs. Lane where you were. I felt left behind by you when she told me that you went out early. When you came back, you called me by my name instead of babe.¡± ¡°Babe, babe, babe¡­ Does that make up for it? Don¡¯t be mad.¡± Serenity called him babe several times. ¡°You also often run out in the middle of the night, and I have no idea what you do outside. If that¡¯s the way you¡¯re going to put it, I¡¯ve also lost count of how many times you¡¯ve left me behind. ¡°But I never got angry at you, and I never questioned whether your love for me is true.¡± Zachary paused before saying, ¡°Are you calling me petty?¡± Serenity loosened her embrace and stood in front of him. She raised her hand to pinch his face and grinned. ¡°Aren¡¯t you? You¡¯re always like this. You only think of your own feelings, but you don¡¯t consider mine when you do the same thing I do. ¡°Name a time when I bickered with you over what you did. Has there been a time when the reason we fought and gave each other the cold shoulder wasn¡¯t because of your temper?¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°I go out in the middle of the night because there are very important things to deal with.¡± ¡°I know, that¡¯s why I don¡¯t let it bother me. I don¡¯t get angry at you, much less¡¯question you.¡± Zachary was silent. Well,pared to her, he really was way pettier. ¡°I went out early to help my sister. I wasn¡¯t doing anything that would let you down. I also told you the truth when I came back. Tell me, babe. Was I really in the wrong?¡± Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes burned into him. If he were to say she was wrong, she would let him sleep in the study for the next six months! Zachary did not dare say that she was wrong. It waspletely natural for her to help out her sister. Her sister¡¯s breakfast diner usually closed around noon, but Serenity reached home just a little past nine. That meant she left the store around nine. She also exined her reason for going out when she came back. Zachary could not say that she was in the wrong. ¡°You¡¯re not wrong. He took her into his arms. ¡°Seren, I just hope that I¡¯ll open my eyes to see you when I wake up every day in the future. I¡¯ll feel very happy and content when I see you in the morning.¡± ¡°I also want that, but can you do it?¡± Zachary was speechless. Serenity smothered augh in his arms. ¡°Not even you can do it. It¡¯s natural that I can¡¯t do it either.¡± Chapter 1307 Chapter 1307 Chapter 1307 ¡°Putting aside all the things we have to do, even if we retire in the future, there¡¯s no guarantee that we¡¯ll wake up every day and see each other right when we open our eyes. There would always be one of them who would wake up earlier than the other. Zachary knew that he was being absurd. ¡°Mrs. Lane said that you haven¡¯t eaten yet. You must be hungry. Come on, let¡¯s go eat. I¡¯ll apany you.¡± Serenity refuted him until he was speechless, and she could tell that he realized he was being unreasonable. Thus, she stopped dwelling on the topic and took the initiative to change the subject. The couple would just end up arguing if they dwelled on it further. ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary hummed and let go of his beloved wife. Serenity pulled him out. Mrs. Lane already served Zachary¡¯s breakfast on the table. Zachary was fussy, but in front of Serenity, he would always have to bow his head andpromise. Mrs. Lane was not worried at all that the breakfast she made would be wasted. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you bring Sonny over?¡± Zachary¡¯s mood improved when his wife sat with him for breakfast. He stopped pulling a long face and asked about the little boy. ¡°Liberty said she would close up early today and let Sonny y in the store. She¡¯ll take him hometer. Zac-Babe, let¡¯s bring Sonny over to stay with us. It¡¯ll make things easier for my sister, and Sonny will be able to sleep peacefully too.¡± Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯m fine with that. You know that I like Sonny very much.¡± Sonny always got up early with his mother, so his sleep quality suffered. If such a small child slept badly, it would affect his growth. ¡°Has your sister agreed?¡± ¡°I asked both Liberty and Sonny to move in with us, but she said no. She refused before, and she¡¯s still refusing now. That¡¯s the kind of person my sister is. She¡¯s always worried that she¡¯ll bother us. She agreed to let us take Sonny, but she won¡¯t move in with us. Zachary said, ¡°Liberty has always been a strong and independent woman. She was just trapped in her marriage for a few years. She won¡¯t think about living with us.¡± From the beginning, Liberty had refused to move in with the couple. She would not start wanting to move in now. She had also repeatedly declined the couple¡¯s financial help. Liberty felt that she still had some money of her own. Her business was doing well, and she was making a profit, so she did not need her sister and brother-inw to help her money-wise. ¡°By the way, Mr. Lewis came early to Liberty¡¯s store for breakfast. I really don¡¯t get his motives. If I ask if he likes Liberty, he won¡¯t admit it and say that he¡¯s only there every day because he likes Sonny. ¡°But it doesn¡¯t seem like he doesn¡¯t like Liberty either. He¡¯s always very eager to help whenever my sister faces trouble. He goes to the rescue faster than I can.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary said, ¡°If Duncan says he doesn¡¯t like her, then leave it at that. Don¡¯t you disapprove of him getting together with your sister? Mrs. Lewis is not easy to get along with.¡± ¡°I feel that Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t bad, but since you said that Mrs. Lewis isn¡¯t easy to get along with, I don¡¯t want my sister to be bullied by her mother-inw again.¡± Serenity was the same as Audrey. They both admired Duncan, but they did not approve of Liberty marrying him. They did not want Liberty to suffer at the hands of her mother-inw again. A mother-inw like Olivia was already bad enough; a mother-inw from an affluent family would only be harder to deal with. Chapter 1308 Chapter 1308 Chapter 1308 Serenity once again sighed at her fortune. Although the man she married liked to throw tantrums, he was very good to her. He never raised his hand against her, and she did not have to worry about him cheating on her. More importantly, his family was great. Having open-minded and tolerant inws like the Yorks was rare among wealthy and influential families. She remembered Grandma May saying that since Serenity saved her life, she would never introduce a bad grandson to Serenity. In fact, all of her grandsons were exceptional. Zachary was just the oldest and thought to be the most exceptional by his elders. ¡°Mrs. Lewis already helped pick a wife candidate for Mr. Lewis. Her name is Ms. Lily Harmon. She¡¯s young and beautiful, but she also seems to be smart andpetent. I could tell at a nce that she was an experienced person. The self-confidence and nobility that emanates from her gestures show that she came from a wealthy background. Furthermore, she must be good if she could earn Mrs. Lewis¡¯s favor.¡± ¡°I know.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Zachary said while eating, ¡°It¡¯s because Mrs. Lewis tried to forcefully matchmake Duncan several times that he was shameless enough to stay in our house.¡± He did not know what the woman¡¯s name was. There was no need for him to know. She was not his wife candidate. All he needed to know was his Serenity. ¡°It¡¯s still Ms. Harmon? I thought it would be someone else. ¡°Mrs. Lewis has high standards. Although she¡¯s anxious about Duncan¡¯s marriage, she¡¯ll never allow him to marry below his social status. She picks her daughter-inw like she¡¯s a queen choosing a consort for the prince. There are not many nobledies in Wiltspoon who caught her eye.¡± The families that Mrs. Lewis had her eye on did not have daughters suitable for marriage. As for families that did have marriageable daughters, Mrs. Lewis did not take a fancy to them. The Lewises were one of the top-ranking giants in Wiltspoon. Duncan was capable on his own and was worth tens of billions. When his father passed and the family assets were divided, Duncan¡¯s fortune would continue to grow even if he did not take a single penny from the inheritance. Thus, Mrs. Lewis was naturally very demanding in choosing a wife for him. Zachary thought of how the York family had no daughters. If he had a sister, she would surely be Mrs. Lewis¡¯s number one pick. ¡°Liberty said that Mrs. Lewis passed by one day and visited the store for a chat. She let Liberty see Ms. Harmon¡¯s picture. Babe, I think Mrs. Lewis did it on purpose. She wanted my sister to back off.¡± Without further thought, he said, ¡°She definitely did it on purpose. An arrogant person like Mrs. Lewis wouldn¡¯t approach your sister and make small talk even if she was just passing by.¡± When Audrey hosted a banquet for her two nieces, Mrs. Lewis did not pay much attention to Liberty that night. The two did not meet again after that banquet. Why would Mrs. Lewis go in and chat with Liberty just because she was passing by? ¡°Will Mrs. Lewis wreck my sister¡¯s store? Will she toss out a check of five million, then tell my sister to leave with the money and nevere back to see Mr. Lewis?¡± Zachary, who was drinking milk, instantly choked when he heard Serenity. He coughed furiously and quickly put down the ss of milk. Serenity tried to pat his back, but he raised his hand to stop her. He quickly stopped coughing and said with a smile, ¡°Seren, you think too much. Clich¨¦s like that only happen in novels, not in real life. ¡°If we didn¡¯t exist and your sister was really trying to pursue Duncan, then Mrs. Lewis would get someone to smash her store. Then, she¡¯ll forcefully drive your sister away, but she won¡¯t give her a single penny. Zachary continued, ¡°But Mrs. Lewis won¡¯t do that because we¡¯re around. I¡¯m good friends with Duncan, and you¡¯re my wife as well as the missus of the York family. No matter how displeased Mrs. Lewis is, there¡¯s nothing she can do. Besides, you guys have your aunt too. ¡°Even if Liberty likes Duncan, Mrs. Lewis would at most go straight to your sister to talk to her. She¡¯ll tell your sister directly that she won¡¯t ept a daughter-inw like her. Chapter 1309 Chapter 1309 Chapter 1309 ¡°I think Mrs. Lewis showed your sister Ms. Harmon¡¯s picture deliberately to test whether your sister has any ideas about Duncan. In the end, she found out that Liberty has absolutely no interest in her son and was purely focused on her store and making money.¡± Zachary¡¯s analysis was more thorough than Serenity¡¯s. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°If Liberty showed the slightest hint that she was interested in Duncan, Mrs. Lewis would not allow her to continue operating her store.¡± Serenity agreed with her husband. Mrs. Lewis was testing Liberty, but Liberty did not know anything. However, that was good. At least Liberty would not be influenced. ¡°Babe, do you think I should tell my sister about all this?¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis¡¯s hands are tied, which means she¡¯s on the same boat as we are. She only has spections but no way to prove them. You don¡¯t need to say anything to Liberty. I¡¯ll talk to Duncan and tell him not to go to your sister¡¯s store for breakfast so often in the future.¡± Zachary grumbled about Duncan in his heart, ¡®He has breakfast prepared for him at home. Why does he have to get up early every weekend to go all the way to All You Can Eat for breakfast?¡± ¡°Okay.¡± After Zachary ate his fill, Serenity asked him with a smile, ¡°Do you want me to apany you anywhere else?¡± Zachary dotingly flicked her forehead. ¡°Of course. I¡¯ve eaten too much and need to go on a walk to help with digestion. Walk with me downstairs.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°It¡¯ll be my honor.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t be so serious. You¡¯re just walking with me. It¡¯s nothing that honorable.¡± Mrs. Lane smiled as she watched the couple go out on a walk. Serenity wanted to bring Snowball with her. She looked at the man beside her, then nced at Snowball, who looked like he wanted to follow. In the end, she chose her man and left Snowball behind. There were quite a number of people walking around in the neighborhood, and there were many walking their dogs. Zachary did not like to be close to those small animals. Whenever he encountered someone with their dog, he pulled Serenity and avoided them. There was one person walking his dog who was embarrassed and said to the couple, ¡°My dog doesn¡¯t bite.¡± Small dogs were all the dogs that the residents of the area kept as pets. Serenity smiled sheepishly at the man but did not exin that her husband did not like furry animals. As for Zachary, he always put on an icy cold face when they were outside. His expression was hard like it was carved from marble. Serenity thought, ¡®I can¡¯t even take a chisel to carve his face. It¡¯s too tough!¡± ¡°Babe, why don¡¯t you like cats or dogs? Putting aside whether other people¡¯s pets are cute or not, our little Snowball and two Ragdolls are adorable, but you don¡¯t like them either. Snowball is round and chubby, so I find him especially cute.¡± Mrs. Lewis took great care of the three pets. Even the two Ragdolls were fed until they were round. They were more than twice as big as when they first arrived at Serenity¡¯s side. ¡°I don¡¯t know why either. I just don¡¯t like them. Back at the manor, my cousins never dared let their pets appear in front of me for fear that I¡¯d sell them.¡± Zachary held Serenity¡¯s hand tightly and looked at her. She did not like how cold and quiet the house was back then, and the couple often got into spats, so it indeed got a little awkward sometimes. After thinking about it, he decided to send her some pets for her to keep, but he did not allow the three little things to enter his room. That was the line he drew. For her, he broke too many exceptions. Serenity knew what his look meant and said with a smile, ¡°Thanks, babe.¡± He would not have given her pets if he did not love her. In fact, Zachary already fell in love with her back when hepromised and gave her pets. Chapter 1310 Chapter 1310 Chapter 1310 ¡°If it¡¯s something you like, I¡¯ll do my best to satisfy you as long as it¡¯s within the scope of what I can tolerate. Don¡¯t thank me. I don¡¯t like to hear you thank me. If you really want to thank me, give me something practical.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°You don¡¯tck anything, and I wholly belong to you. What else can I give you?¡± Zachary liked what she had just said very much. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. When she took out her phone to look at the caller ID, she excitedly answered the call. Zachary tried to guess who the person calling was. Why was Serenity so eager to answer their call? Was she also this excited whenever he called her? Zachary tended to be jealous of her loved ones andpared himself to them. He hoped that in the end, she would consider him to be the most significant. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°Nana.¡± Serenity did not know that the man beside her was being jealous because she answered the phone so quickly. The call was from Grandma May. When Zachary heard Serenity¡¯s greeting over the phone, he raised the white g of surrender in his heart. He could not beat his nana. ¡°Seren, how have you been? Did you miss me while I wasn¡¯t home?¡± Grandma Mayughed over the phone, obviously in a good mood. ¡°How could I have not missed you? You ran all the way to Jensburg without a word. I wanted to follow you there to see the fun.¡± Grandma May chortled. ¡°There¡¯s no fun to see yet. When there is, the person causing the hustle would go over to find Zack and you even without me calling you. It¡¯s the weekend today, and Zack doesn¡¯t have to work. Don¡¯t you two have any ns? ¡°A simple road trip would be good too. You¡¯ll be bored if you stay at home all day.¡± ¡°We have a banquet to attend tonight, so we didn¡¯t make any other ns today. We¡¯ve already visited all the scenic spots in Wiltspoon. There¡¯s nowhere else on the list to visit.¡± Serenity was frank. She had lived in Wiltspoon for many years and went to all the fun ces even before she married Zachary. ¡°What banquet? Who¡¯s the host? Are you still going with your aunt?¡± Grandma May asked with concern. ¡°It¡¯s the Marshalls¡¯ banquet. It¡¯s being held at Wiltspoon Hotel. I¡¯m going with Zachary, so I won¡¯t be with my aunt tonight.¡± Grandma May smiled upon hearing that. ¡°Oh, the Marshalls? He had always held his banquets in October. Why did he bring forward this year¡¯s banquet by half a year? Does he n to hold two banquets this year? Well, go ahead with Zack then. He has never brought a woman to a banquet with him before. ¡°He doesn¡¯t have any experience. Seren, you have to tolerate him. Remember what I told you. You need to teach your man to be the man you want him to be. A good man can only be trained by your own hands, but don¡¯t spoil him too much. Men can¡¯t be spoiled. A little sweetness is enough to spoil them rotten.¡± Standing beside Serenity, Zachary heard everything that his nana said. He could not help but spit out, ¡°Nana, are you really my grandmother? I¡¯ve never heard you say good things about me.¡± ¡°Seren, is that brat with you?¡± Grandma May¡¯s voice did not grow softer. Instead, she raised her voice, deliberately letting Zachary hear her clearly. She said, ¡°You little brat, you need to work on your temper and that tense face of yours. It¡¯s as if everyone owes you a million dors. Only someone like Serenity can tolerate you. You have to cherish your blessings and treat her well.¡± Zachary said, ¡°Will it be enough if I carve out my heart for her?¡± Chapter 1311 Chapter 1311 Chapter 1311 Serenity chuckled along. ¡°Nana, Zachary is very good to me.¡± Grandma May said the same thing her sister always nagged her about. The old womanughed on the other side of the phone. Zachary asked, ¡°When are youing back?¡± ¡°I¡¯m still lying in the hospital now. I won¡¯t be back soon.¡± Zachary and Serenity both asked with concern at the same time, ¡°What happened?¡± Even after chatting for so long, Grandma May did not mention that she was in the hospital. She acted like everything was fine and talked with a smile, so the couple did not expect her to be hospitalized. ¡°I went out alone and fell when I was startled by Mr. Queen¡¯s car. I just bumped my hip bone a little. Mr. Queen sent me to the hospital and helped me to notify my family. The only family I have in Jensburg is Kevin.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Nana, can¡¯t you use a different method?¡± His nana was not young anymore. If she was not careful enough, she might actually hurt herself from the fall. Grandma May appeared aggrieved and said, ¡°I really was startled by Mr. Queen¡¯s car.¡± There was no way Zachary would believe his nana. Hearing this, Serenity understood that Grandma May might have also been acting when she saved the old woman back then. Grandma May wanted to make Serenity her savior, then she could make Zachary marry Serenity as a way of repaying her. Now, she was using the same trick for Kevin. The olddy could not care less about reusing the same trick since it was still applicable. She wanted Hayden to feel apologetic to her. That way, it would be easier for her to act. ¡°Nana, is Mr. Queen handsome?¡± ¡°Yes, she¡¯s much more handsome in person.¡± Serenity asked nosily, ¡°Is Kevin satisfied?¡± ¡°Not even he¡¯s as handsome as Hayden. It doesn¡¯t matter if he¡¯s satisfied or not. I like Hayden. She¡¯s as stoic as Zack, but she brings her bodyguards around not to keep other women away, but to prevent people from finding out that she¡¯s a woman disguised as a man. ¡°People like Hayden who don¡¯t talk much should have a husband like Kevin. Kevin has a mouth on him that can talk to anyone.¡± Although Kevin did not like his nana leading him by the nose and was firmly against his nana setting him up with Hayden, his chatty nature came into full y when he met her. For someone who had always been quiet, Hayden chatted with him for a long time. Serenity felt curiosity gnawing at her. She really wanted to clone herself and go over to watch the This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. fun. ¡°Seren, help me watch Callum and Camryn. They also look like fun. You only have one pair of eyes, so you can¡¯t see everything. Don¡¯t feel bad about it.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Someone¡¯sing, I¡¯ll talk to youter.¡± Grandma May heard footsteps from outside and immediately hung up the phone,y back on the hospital bed, and pretended to be asleep. Soon, someone knocked on the door and entered. The sound of steady footfalls reached the olddy¡¯s ears, and she recognized her visitor as none other than Hayden. She opened her eyes. ¡°Granny, you¡¯re awake. Did I wake you?¡± Chapter 1312 Chapter 1312 Chapter 1312 Hayden was dressed in a suit. Her features were handsome, and her figure was tall and straight. She dressed as a man for many years and had deliberately gotten a fake Adam¡¯s apple, so no one except her closest rtives knew that she was a woman. The Queen family was also very protective of their children and would not let the outside world get information about them. Therefore, when Hayden appeared in public in men¡¯s clothes, others thought that Mrs. Queen had two boys and called Hayden ¡°Mr. Queen¡°. Hayden entered with a bunch of supplements for the elderly in her hands. She ced them on the bedside table and saw that the old woman was the only one in the ward. She asked soberly,¡± Granny, where is your grandson?¡± ¡°I just woke up, so I don¡¯t know where Kevin went. Maybe he saw me asleep and went out to buy something. Have a seat, Mr. Queen.¡± Grandma May was about to sit up. Hayden quickly pressed her down. ¡°You can¡¯t sit up right now. The doctor said you have to lie down for a speedy recovery.¡± In fact, there was nothing wrong with Grandma May. Hayden was worried that something might happen to the olddy, so she insisted on sending Grandma May to the hospital for a checkup. Although the doctor said that there were no problems found, Granma May kept saying that she was in pain, so the doctor suggested that she stay in the hospital for a few days of observation. If it were anyone else, Hayden would have thought it was an insurance scam. However, she did not suspect the old woman. She knew who Kevin was. This old woman was Kevin¡¯s grandmother. She was Old Mrs. York of the richest family in Wiltspoon. Her reputation spread far and wide in themunity. Grandma May did not insist on sitting up. ¡°How are you feeling today? Does it still hurt?¡± Hayden sat down in front of Grandma May¡¯s hospital bed. ¡°It doesn¡¯t hurt, but I was quite startled back then, so I didn¡¯t sleep well these nights. I get jolted awake easily¡± Hayden fell silent After a long time, she said apologetically. ¡°My driver drove too fast and almost hit you that day. Fortunately, you were fine. I bought some supplements for you that have a calming effect. Feel free to take them¡± ¡°I don¡¯t me you, Mr. Queen. I was also at fault for not paying attention when crossing the road I¡¯m fine. When Kevines back, I¡¯ll tell him to help me get discharged from the hospital. It¡¯s boring lying here all day.¡± Grandma May asked, ¡°Mr. Queen, what are the interesting ces in Jensburg?¡± ¡°There are quite a lot of tourist attractions in Jensburg. If you want to go around, you can ask Mr. York to apany you.¡± Grandma May¡¯s expression immediately fell. ¡°Kevin came here on a business trip and has a lot of work to handle. He¡¯s busy every day and doesn¡¯t have time to stroll around with me. It has also been a long time since Ist came to Jensburg. I came here with myte husband several times. when I was young. ¡°Now that I¡¯m old, I want to revisit the ces we traveled together as a couple. I want to do it while I¡¯m still alive and can walk around.¡± Hayden was still silent. Seeing the fruits on the bedside table, she quietly picked up arge apple and got up to go to the bathroom to clean it. She then sat in front of the bed to peel it for the olddy. When Hayden did not say anything, Grandma May took the initiative and asked, ¡°Mr. Queen, could you arrange a tour guide for me?¡± Hayden said in a low voice, ¡°Mr. York can arrange it.¡± ¡°Kevin won¡¯t agree to me sightseeing unless I have someone he trusts to apany me. Sigh, I¡¯m old and useless, and now I don¡¯t even have my freedom. I have to consult my children and grandchildren and get their permission before I can go anywhere. If they don¡¯t agree, I can¡¯t move an inch.¡± Hayden sliced the peeled apple and handed one piece to the old woman. Her voice remained low as she said, ¡°Granny, you¡¯re being unfair by saying that about your children and grandchildren.¡±Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Chapter 1313 Chapter 1313 Chapter 1313 Hayden continued, ¡°As far as I know, you¡¯re free to do whatever you want in Wiltspoon. No one will dare say a word against you if you want to go anywhere.¡± Grandma May was speechless. This trick worked very well with Serenity, but not against Hayden. Hayden would not offer to apany the old woman. At that moment, Kevin came back. He indeed took advantage of the fact that his nana had not woken up yet to take care of business. It was close to noon now, and he packed lunch from his hotel and sent it over for his nana to eat. From a distance, he saw a few ck¨Cd bodyguards walking around at the entrance of his nana¡¯s ward. He knew that it was Hayden who came to visit. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Kevin felt helpless. He knew that his grandmother was looking forward to her grandchildren starting families of their own, but that was no excuse for shoving a tomboy at him. He really did not feel any sparks for Mr. Queen. Seeing Hayden was like looking at a handsome man. Kevin felt that he would be gay if his heart skipped a beat for a good¨Clooking guy. The Queen family¡¯s bodyguards saw Kevin bringing a meal over and nodded at him. ¡°Mr. York.¡± Kevin was responsible for all the hotels under York Corporation. When Zachary and he were not in the same room, everyone called him Mr. York. If Zachary was present, everyone would call him Mr. Kevin instead. Kevin responded to the bodyguards before pushing the door and entering the ward. He saw Hayden sitting in front of the bed, silently watching his nana without a word. Meanwhile, his nana ate an apple while speaking, but Hayden did not respond. Grandma May seemed relieved to see hime in. Kevin suddenly had the urge to turn tail and run. ¡°Kevin.¡± The olddy did not give her grandson a chance to sneak out and immediately called out to him. Kevin walked over to greet his nana and Hayden. ¡°Mr. York.¡± Hayden stood up and stopped talking after she greeted Kevin. After standing for a moment, she found an excuse to leave. Grandma May told her grandson to see Hayden out. Two minutester, Kevin returned to the ward. ¡°Back so soon?¡± Kevin said in amusement, ¡°How long did you want me to take? Mr. Queen is very busy and has ns for lunch with a big client. She only came to see you because she was passing by the hospital.¡± If not for the fact that Grandma May fell down and was hospitalized because she was startled b Hayden¡¯s car, causing Hayden to feel a sense of responsibility, she would not have taken the tim to visit the old woman. Chapter 1314 Chapter 1314 Chapter 1314 ¡°Kevin, find a reason to invite her to a meal at one of our hotels.¡± Kevin paused. ¡°Nana¡­ What excuse am I going to use to invite her? Thank you for scaring my nana until she was hospitalized¡°?¡± Grandma May was speechless. Then, she said, ¡°You¡¯re a smart boy, you can think of something. Don¡¯t think that I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re thinking. Mr. Queen is a great person and is a perfect match for you. Your mouth never stops chattering, but Mr. Queen doesn¡¯t talk much. You two won¡¯t be bored together.¡± ¡°Nana, you¡¯re also calling her Mr. Queen. When I look at her, it¡¯s really as if I¡¯m looking at a man. She won¡¯t admit that she¡¯s a woman either. You keep trying to push us together, but I feel like I¡¯m looking for a brother instead of a wife. It feels like I¡¯m gay.¡± Grandma Mayughed. ¡°She¡¯s very convincing at ying the role of a man, but experienced people will be able to tell by hearing her voice. Her deliberate deep voice is different from your natural baritone. Her voice is still crisp and bright, unlike yours which is maic. ¡°She portrays herself as a man, but she knows very well that she¡¯s a woman. She just doesn¡¯t admit it. It¡¯ll be clear when she takes her clothes off.¡± Kevin could not help but ask, ¡°Nana, am I really your grandson? If you¡¯re upset with me, you can just beat me up with your cane. If that doesn¡¯t work, you can beat me up two, three more times. You don¡¯t need to do this to me. ¡°I¡¯d get beaten to death by Mr. Queen if I dared remove her clothes. This is Jensburg, not Wiltspoon. Jensburg is the Queens¡® territory!¡± Kevinined that his nana was setting him up but his hands continued to move as he washed the cutlery. He brought over the meal he packed, served it in a bowl, and wanted to feed her, but she refused. It was not like the old woman was really injured. She could eat by herself and did not need her grandson to feed her. ¡°I didn¡¯t tell you to forcibly strip her to confirm her gender. After you get acquainted with her, you can ask her to go to the hot springs with you. Can¡¯t you think of something that simple?¡± Kevin was speechless. ¡°Nana loves you the most. Didn¡¯t you see that I¡¯m not interfering with Callum and letting him dig his own grave? Instead, I¡¯m personally stepping in when ites to you. How could you say I¡¯m not treating you like my grandson?¡± Kevin muttered, ¡°I¡¯d rather you give that kind of love to Callum.¡± Although Callurn¡¯s wife candidate was blind, at least she did not dress up like a man like Hayden. Ms. Newman must be smart if she could be chosen by his nana. ¡°I¡¯ve left Callum in the care of Zack and Seren, so I don¡¯t have to worry about him. I only need to Kevin could not help but ask, ¡°Can¡¯t you let us fall in love at our own pace?¡± ¡°I am. I¡¯m just giving you a target and a time limit of one year. If you really can¡¯t be husband and wife within one year, I¡¯ll give up.¡± Kevin muttered, ¡°We¡¯re said to be favored and giants among men, but in your eyes, we¡¯re unmarketable products that can¡¯t be sold. We¡¯re not that old. We¡¯re all still under thirty¨Cfive. Look, Duncan is thirty¨Csix but still unmarried.¡± ¡± Kevin nned to solve his marriage when he was thirty to thirty¨Cfive years old. Men like him who had busy jobs and sessful careers marriedter rather than sooner. Case in point¨CZachary was only forced to marry all of a sudden by Grandma May when he hit thirty. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Back then, Kevin was thankful that Zachary was the eldest because only the eldest would suffer something like that while the younger ones would not have to experience it. However, he forgot the fact that once Zachary was no longer around to act like a shield, none of the other brothers could escape anymore. Only the youngest two or three could get away with it. It would be another decade or so before the youngest one could get married. By then, their nana would no longer have the energy to torture them. Grandma May said, ¡°Duncan already has a target, and his grandmother has passed away. If she were still alive, I guarantee she would¡¯ve thrown a tantrum and used every possible means to force Duncan to get married and have children.¡± Kevin still remembered thete Old Mrs. Lewis. The woman was even more difficult to handle than his own nana. Compared to Old Mrs. Lewis¡­ Yep, his nana was considered much better. Chapter 1315 Chapter 1315 Chapter 1315 ¡°Just be happy with what you have. Although I worry about your marriage, I¡¯m not like that old friend of mine. I¡¯ll help you find the right girl ording to your character so that you¡¯re free to develop feelings for yourself. I¡¯m showing you more than enough respect. ¡°Your parents are also irresponsible. They only know how to nag you a little but never take any action. That¡¯s why a pack of old bones like me had to get her hands dirty. ¡°I know you guys scold me every day for being overbearing.¡± Kevin immediately defended, ¡°Nana, we¡¯ve never scolded you, much less for being overbearing. Our nana is the smartest. We all love you very much.¡± Their parents only nagged them about getting married but never took any action. They simply let the old woman do the heavy lifting instead because they knew the boys respected her the most and would not be angry no matter what she did. Even Zachary and his temper gave in to his nana in the end. Besides, Zachary and Serenity were very happy now, making their nana feel excited. She thought that all her grandsons would be happy if she made a move. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°Don¡¯t be a kiss*ss. I don¡¯t need you to tter me. What I need is a daughter¨Cinw and a great- granddaughter. I¡¯ll reward whoever gives me a great¨Cgranddaughter!¡± Kevin said, ¡°You should urge Zachary and Serenity instead. At least they¡¯re married.¡± Hayden and he were not together yet. ¡°I mentioned it to Serenity a few times, so I can¡¯t bring it up again. If I do, it¡¯ll be like I¡¯m pressuring her to have a baby. Sigh, those two are living so sweetly now. How could there be no change?¡± Although Grandma May no longer urged them to have a child, she was still anxious for a great- grandchild. ¡°It hasn¡¯t been that long yet, and they haven¡¯t even had their wedding. There¡¯s no hurry, Nana. You don¡¯t have to rush Zachary and Serenity. Maybe Callum would overtake them from behind.¡± Grandma May onlyined in front of her grandson. She would not say anything in front of Serenity. Meanwhile, after Grandma May hung up the phone, Zachary and Serenity walked a fewps around the neighborhood before going home to prepare lunch. Thinking of how he threw an unreasonable tantrum earlier, Zachary told Mrs. Lane not to help as he personally prepared lunch. Mrs. Lane was not at ease and went in and out of the kitchen multiple times, wanting to help. In the end, she finally left the kitchen despondently when Zachary¡¯s expression darkened. Serenity, who was tending to the flowers on the balcony, gave her a smile. ¡°Mrs. Lane, let him cook if he wants to cook. It¡¯s not like he can¡¯t handle it.¡± ¡°Missus, I¡¯m just¡­ not used to it. I feel guilty for some reason.¡± She did not feel right epting her sry. ¡°It¡¯s fine, you¡¯ll get used to it after a few times.¡± Mrs. Lane was speechless. Zachary doted on Serenity. He would do anything as long as he could make her happy. In the meantime, at the Lewis residence, Duncan returned home under Lily¡¯s repeated persuasions after he left for All You Can Eat early in the morning. She told him to have lunch with his parents. Mrs. Lewis had already received news from Lily and returned to Duncan¡¯s house in advance. She also called her three other sons toe back. The whole family gathered for a meal together. ¡°It¡¯s quite windy today. Lily, do you want to go on a stroll to help with digestion?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked with a smile just as Lily sat down. Mrs. Lewis was overjoyed that Lily was able to convince Duncan toe home. She grew increasingly confident in matchmaking Lily and Duncan. ¡°I do n on going out on a walk and enjoying the breeze.¡± Chapter 1316 Chapter 1316 Chapter 1316 Lily had a habit of going on a stroll after eating. Mrs. Lewis looked at Duncan. Duncan and his three brothers were talking about the recent trends in the stock market. He did not notice the conversation between Lily and his mother, much less his mother staring at him. It was his second brother who noticed first. He nudged Duncan and whispered, ¡°Mom is looking at you. I think she wants you to do something.¡± Duncan turned to look at his mother and smiled. ¡°What¡¯s up, Mom?¡± Why was she looking at him like that? ¡°Lily wants to go on a stroll. Go with her.¡± Mrs. Lewis did not expect this son of hers to appreciate the pains she was taking, so she spoke bluntly and told him to apany Lily on a walk. Duncan looked at Lily and said, ¡°Ms. Harmon, you¡¯ve lived in my home for a while now, so you should be familiar with the environment here. You can¡¯t go very far, so you can just walk by yourself. You won¡¯t get lost.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s expression darkened. She almost wanted to throw something at Duncan. Lily smiled. ¡°Yes, I won¡¯t get lost, but it¡¯s boring to walk alone. I want apanion to chat with me as I walk. ¡°Can youe with me?¡± As all eyes were on Duncan, the words of refusal climbed up his throat before he swallowed them down again. He said, ¡°The sun is right above us now. It¡¯s too hot.¡± It was not evening. The weather in Wiltspoon started warming up around March to April, and many would change to short¨C sleeved shirts by May. They would start longing for their electric fans. ¡°It¡¯s windy today and not hot at all,¡± Mrs. Lewis said. ¡°Lily is our guest, so you have to walk with This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. her.¡± Duncan looked at his three brothers, hoping that they would speak up for him. However, they nced away and refused to meet his eyes. With no other choice, Duncan stood up and said to Lily, ¡°Let¡¯s go, Ms. Harmon. I¡¯ll apany you for a stroll outside.¡± Lily smiled. ¡°Thank you for sparing the time, Duncan.¡± Looking at the backs of the two people going out together, Mrs. Lewis said to her husband happily, ¡°Those two are such a great match. Duncan just doesn¡¯t understand. Lily is a great girl. If he doesn¡¯t grab her, she¡¯ll be taken away by someone else. ¡°He only has this advantage because I¡¯m good friends with Lily¡¯s mother.¡± Derek smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t push him too hard. Duncan was so scared of you that he ran off to live at Zachary¡¯s ce.¡± ¡°That brat¡­ Tonight, I¡¯ll talk to Zachary and ask him to chase that brat out.¡± ¡°Mom, I don¡¯t think Duncan is interested in Ms. Harmon,¡± said the eldest son, Emmett. The second son, Kyle, chimed in, ¡°Mom, you can¡¯t force emotions. If Duncan doesn¡¯t like Ms. Harmon, don¡¯t force him to be with her. If it¡¯s not meant to be, then it¡¯s not meant to be. I don¡¯t think Ms. Harmon is the type who likes being forced into a rtionship.¡± Lily was a woman with her own opinions. She only let her parents set her up with Duncan because she was genuinely interested in him. However, that did not mean she liked to be forced into a rtionship. If she could not conquer Duncan, she would give up. She would never marry a man who did not love her ¡°They haven¡¯t even tried it out yet, so how would they know they won¡¯t develop feelings for each other? It¡¯s because you¡¯re always speaking up for him that he still can¡¯t get a wife at thirty¨Csix. He¡¯ll be forty in a few years. Some people would have grandchildren by then, but he doesn¡¯t even have a girlfriend.¡± Chapter 1317 Chapter 1317 Chapter 1317 Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Duncan¡¯s three brothers did not dare say more. They were afraid their mother would me them for spoiling Duncan if they spoke up for him again, causing him to still remain single at the age of thirty¨Csix. Duncan apanied Lily out of the house. The two strolled casually along the paved path in the courtyard. However, Duncan¡¯s pace was fast. Lily wore high heels, so she struggled to follow him. ¡°Duncan.¡± Lily was not the type who was willing to suffer for the sake of others. She jogged up and reached out to pull Duncan¡¯s hand. ¡°What is it?¡± Duncan¡¯s attitude toward Lily was neither good nor bad. He did not hate Lily, but he just did not feel a spark with her. He also did not like how his family was arranging a girlfriend for him without his consent. ¡°Are you running a race with me?¡± Duncan¡¯s dark eyes shed. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you wanted to take a stroll? Even if you wanted to race, you can¡¯t race after just eating. It¡¯ll upset your stomach.¡± Lily paused before stating, ¡°Don¡¯t y dumb, Duncan. There¡¯s a bench here. Let¡¯s sit down and talk.¡± Duncan wanted to say that he had nothing to talk to her about. Theirpanies never worked together before, so there was nothing to talk about when it came to business. However, he followed her to the stone bench ahead. Just as he was about to sit down, Lily stopped him, took out a packet of scented tissues, and wiped the bench. She only allowed him to sit down after she threw away the tissue. This girl was a conscientious person. Duncan sat down and said, ¡°The workers here clean the stone benches and tables in the backyard every day.¡± ¡°It¡¯s been windy recently, so there¡¯s a lot of dust in the air. Even if it¡¯s cleaned daily, there¡¯ll still be dust. The tissue was full of dirt when I wiped it just now.¡± Duncan smiled and asked, ¡°Ms. Harmon, are you a clean freak?¡± ¡°No.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. I¡¯m most afraid of clean freaks. An uncouth man like me can¡¯t get along with clean freaks. Zachary is a bit of a clean freak, but he falls within my tolerance. Zachary was just fussy with cleanliness. He was not a germaphobe. ¡°When are you going back, Ms. Harmon?¡± Duncan did not spend much time with Lily and had nothing to talk about, so he simply asked her when she was leaving. Lily looked at him and said with a vague smile, ¡°Are you chasing me out? I haven¡¯t stayed that long yet. I finished what I came here to do, but I haven¡¯t finished the talks withrgepanies like yours. I won¡¯t be able to go back in the near future.¡± The elders of both families wanted to set her up with Duncan, so her parents and brothers supported her in staying at Wiltspoon to talk about business. Her eldest brother was around to manage the company, so she just had to focus on signing a contract with Lewis & Co. Once they started working together, Lily coulde and visit Duncan often. ¡°I didn¡¯t say I wanted to kick you out. I just felt that you¡¯ve been staying here for a long time but I guess it doesn¡¯t seem that long after all. Let¡¯s talk about our partnership during workdays. It¡¯s the weekend now, so we should rx instead of talking shop.¡± Chapter 1318 Chapter 1318 Chapter 1318 Lily agreed. ¡°I¡¯m like that too. I only talk about work while I¡¯m at work, and no talking shop while I¡¯m resting. ¡°Duncan, can I ask you some questions?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Go ahead.¡± ¡°Our parents want us to be a couple, and I¡¯m quite pleased with you. You can say that I like you very much, but it¡¯s definitely too early to say that I love you. However, I believe I will be able to fall in love with you with time.¡± In Lily¡¯s eyes, Duncan was her target. She liked him and wanted to conquer him, but when it came to love¡­ Even she did not believe she loved him now, let alone Duncan. There was no such thing as love at first sight when it came to them. ¡°However, you keep running away from me. Is it because I¡¯m not good enough? Or do you have another person in your heart?¡± Duncan did not expect Lily to be so blunt about it. She did not hide anything or beat around the bush. Instead, she asked him directly. This character of hers was quite suitable as a friend. He looked at Lily. For the first time, he looked at her closely. He had to admit that she was beautiful and excellent in all aspects. Even someone as picky as his mother was incredibly satisfied with Lily. That was because Lily¡¯s conditions were good. They were both from affluent families. Although they live in different cities, transportation was well¨C developed now. Even if they were not in the same city, it was not a big problem for two rich families to join in marriage. For example, the Johnson family from Annenburg and the Lafayette family from Meadspring came together in marriage. Annenburg and Meadspring were very far from each other. ¡°You¡¯re a great person, Ms. Harmon. You¡¯re young, pretty, and very capable. You¡¯re the ideal daughter¨C inw in my mother¡¯s eyes.¡± Lilyughed. ¡°What¡¯s the use of being an ideal daughter¨Cinw in your mom¡¯s eyes? I want to know if I¡¯m the ideal wife in your eyes.¡± # Duncan thought about it and said, ¡°I¡¯m very busy at work. If my wife is also busy with work, we¡¯ll both have to go out early ande homete every day. There won¡¯t be warmth and happiness in the rtionship if we don¡¯t spend time together as husband and wife.¡± ¡°So, you want your wife to stay at home and take care of you and your children?¡± That was something she could not do. Even after marrying, she still had to keep her career and be financially independent. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t go that far. I want a wife who has a career but doesn¡¯t have to go out early andes home late every day. I want someone who can allocate half her time caring for the family. I don¡¯t care how much money she earns as long as she¡¯s happy. I can provide for a family¨Cto support my wife and children.¡± Duncan unknowingly listed Liberty¡¯s current characteristics. Liberty could be considered having a career now. She had to leave early every day, but she did not have toe backte. Her business was only open for half a day, so the remaining half was free. time for her. Lily was smart and felt that the conditions Duncan put forward were a perfect match for Liberty, but she did not point it out. Duncan went to All You Can Eat for breakfast every day and was exceptionally kind to Liberty¡¯s son, but there was nothing wrong with that. He probably would not admit it himself that he took a fancy to Liberty. ¡°Both you and I are busy with work, but if we¡¯re willing to find time to take care of our family, I believe we can do it. If we get together like both our parents want, I¡¯ll definitely take care of my small family with care. However, it¡¯ll be our home, so you also have to take care of it.¡± Duncan replied. ¡°We¡¯re not together yet¡­¡± 6 ¡°I was just making an analogy. Do you think I¡¯m right? If you only want the woman to take care of the family while you enjoy yourself without making an effort, we¡¯ll end it here. We will only remain friends and business partners.¡± What Lily wanted was mutual love, not unconditional effort from just one party. ¡°You¡¯re right, Ms. Harmon. I¡¯m not the kind of person who only cares about enjoying myself and not making the effort to care for my family. Both the man and woman have to work together for a marriage tost. Only then will the couple remain happy.¡± Chapter 1318 Lily agreed. ¡°I¡¯m like that too. I only talk about work while I¡¯m at work, and no talking shop while I¡¯m resting. ¡°Duncan, can I ask you some questions?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Go ahead.¡± ¡°Our parents want us to be a couple, and I¡¯m quite pleased with you. You can say that I like you very much, but it¡¯s definitely too early to say that I love you. However, I believe I will be able to fall in love with you with time.¡± In Lily¡¯s eyes, Duncan was her target. She liked him and wanted to conquer him, but when it came to love¡­ Even she did not believe she loved him now, let alone Duncan. There was no such thing as love at first sight when it came to them. ¡°However, you keep running away from me. Is it because I¡¯m not good enough? Or do you have another person in your heart?¡± Duncan did not expect Lily to be so blunt about it. She did not hide anything or beat around the bush. Instead, she asked him directly. This character of hers was quite suitable as a friend. He looked at Lily. For the first time, he looked at her closely. He had to admit that she was beautiful and excellent in all aspects. Even someone as picky as his mother was incredibly satisfied with Lily. That was because Lily¡¯s conditions were good. They were both from affluent families. Although they live in different cities, transportation was well¨C developed now. Even if they were not in the same city, it was not a big problem for two rich families to join in marriage. For example, the Johnson family from Annenburg and the Lafayette family from Meadspring came together in marriage. Annenburg and Meadspring were very far from each other. ¡°You¡¯re a great person, Ms. Harmon. You¡¯re young, pretty, and very capable. You¡¯re the ideal daughter¨C inw in my mother¡¯s eyes.¡± Lilyughed. ¡°What¡¯s the use of being an ideal daughter¨Cinw in your mom¡¯s eyes? I want to know if I¡¯m the ideal wife in your eyes.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. # Duncan thought about it and said, ¡°I¡¯m very busy at work. If my wife is also busy with work, we¡¯ll both have to go out early ande homete every day. There won¡¯t be warmth and happiness in the rtionship if we don¡¯t spend time together as husband and wife.¡± ¡°So, you want your wife to stay at home and take care of you and your children?¡± That was something she could not do. Even after marrying, she still had to keep her career and be financially independent. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t go that far. I want a wife who has a career but doesn¡¯t have to go out early andes home late every day. I want someone who can allocate half her time caring for the family. I don¡¯t care how much money she earns as long as she¡¯s happy. I can provide for a family¨Cto support my wife and children.¡± Duncan unknowingly listed Liberty¡¯s current characteristics. Liberty could be considered having a career now. She had to leave early every day, but she did not have toe backte. Her business was only open for half a day, so the remaining half was free. time for her. Lily was smart and felt that the conditions Duncan put forward were a perfect match for Liberty, but she did not point it out. Duncan went to All You Can Eat for breakfast every day and was exceptionally kind to Liberty¡¯s son, but there was nothing wrong with that. He probably would not admit it himself that he took a fancy to Liberty. ¡°Both you and I are busy with work, but if we¡¯re willing to find time to take care of our family, I believe we can do it. If we get together like both our parents want, I¡¯ll definitely take care of my small family with care. However, it¡¯ll be our home, so you also have to take care of it.¡± Duncan replied. ¡°We¡¯re not together yet¡­¡± 6 ¡°I was just making an analogy. Do you think I¡¯m right? If you only want the woman to take care of the family while you enjoy yourself without making an effort, we¡¯ll end it here. We will only remain friends and business partners.¡± What Lily wanted was mutual love, not unconditional effort from just one party. ¡°You¡¯re right, Ms. Harmon. I¡¯m not the kind of person who only cares about enjoying myself and not making the effort to care for my family. Both the man and woman have to work together for a marriage tost. Only then will the couple remain happy.¡± Chapter 1319 Chapter 1319 Chapter 1319 Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Duncan did not like his mother setting him up with girls, but he had to admit that Lily¡¯s words were reasonable. ¡°After talking about it, I think we share simr views, and you also think I¡¯m excellent. Why don¡¯t we give it a try? If you still can¡¯t fall in love with me, I won¡¯t continue to pester you.¡± It was not like Lily had no other suitors. Duncan was silent. ¡°Do you have someone you like, Duncan?¡± ¡°No.¡± Duncan denied that he had someone he liked, but the image of that once¨Cfat figure gradually slimming down flittered in his mind. He adamantly denied to Zachary and the others that he had any feelings for Liberty. Why did he suddenly think of her now? He liked Sonny, not Sonny¡¯s mom. Duncan snapped back to his senses and hurriedly waved Liberty¡¯s figure out of his mind, not daring to think about her again. Lily smiled. ¡°Since you don¡¯t have anyone you like, let¡¯s give it a try. If you have someone you like, tell me who she is and I¡¯ll see how I¡¯m inferior to her. I¡¯ll try fighting for you. If I can¡¯t win, I¡¯ll give up.¡± She would try her best no matter what she did. If she lost even after trying, she would admit defeat. There was no shame in admitting defeat since it was like letting herself go. If she refused to admit defeat and stubbornly pestered him, she would be the one getting hurt. It was the same as harming herself. Duncan said, ¡°I¡¯m too busy to date.¡± ¡°It won¡¯t take much of your time. We¡¯ll just go out for meals together, take walks, go on a road trip during the weekends, or watch movies when we¡¯re free.¡± Duncan was speechless. ¡°Since you don¡¯t n on meeting me halfway, I¡¯ll run to you first.¡± Lily was formally telling Duncan that she wanted to pursue him. Duncan looked at this brave girl. Her efficient and firm attitude ticked his boxes, but he could not bring himself to agree with her. He always felt that she was not the person he wanted. ¡°We all have the freedom to like the person we want to like. You can do whatever you want, Ms. Harmon, but don¡¯t go home crying to your family and get your elders to teach me a lesson if you get hurt.¡± Duncan felt that he would not ept Lily¡¯s feelings, so he said those unpleasant words bluntly. He wanted Lily to be mentally prepared to lose and not to think about using their parents to pressure him. The person who could pressure him was no longer alive. Lily smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m not that kind of person.¡± Duncan stood up and asked, ¡°Do you still want to stroll? Let¡¯s go one morep before going back to the house for a rest. We have a banquet to attend tonight.¡± Duncan did not intend to apany his mother to the banquet, but since he was urged toe home, he had no choice but to apany his mother and Lily to show up together. However, he would not admit that Lily was his girlfriend. They were not together yet. He wondered if Liberty¨CNo, not Liberty. He wondered if Sonny would follow the adults to the banquet today. Time passed quickly, and evening soon arrived. Serenity asked her sister again and gave up when Liberty refused firmly. She finally gave up o persuading her sister toe to the banquet. In Zachary¡¯s hilltop vi, he selected a beautiful but somewhat conservative dress from the wardrobe and handed it to Serenity. ¡°I told you that Liberty wouldn¡¯t want to go.¡± After handing her the gown, he said gently, ¡°You don¡¯t have to be too anxious to pull Liberty in the circle. Just let nature take its course.¡± Chapter 1320 Chapter 1320 Chapter 1320 Liberty said that there was no need to force herself if she could not meld into the social circle. When it was time, she could step into the circle naturally without deliberately trying to. Zachary appreciated that part about his sister¨Cinw. She knew her ce but did not put herself down. ¡°Am I wearing this? I don¡¯t think it looks good.¡± Serenity looked at the gown Zachary picked out for her and felt that there was something odd about it. However, she could not pinpoint what it was. ¡°It¡¯s good, it¡¯s very good. You have a good figure, good looks, and a great mien. You¡¯ll look good in anything.¡± Serenity held the gown and said, ¡°I¡¯ll go pick one myself.¡± All the clothes in the cloakroom were prepared by Zachary. There were so many different evening gowns that she could open up a dress store. When Serenity chose her dresses, she only cared if they looked good and did not bother picking the ones that covered the most skin. As a result, every gown she picked was rejected by Zachary. ¡°Honey, just wear the one I picked for you. I guarantee you¡¯ll look noble and grand.¡± The dress covered her shoulders and back. Zachary did not dare mention that. Serenity looked at him, and he smiled at her. ¡°Trust me, honey. If you wear this dress, you¡¯ll definitely be the focus of the entire hall.¡± As long as he was by her side, she would be the center of attention even if she was inly dressed. Serenity held the dress in one hand and reached out to flick his forehead with her other hand. ¡± You¡¯re so domineering!¡± If she did not wear what he selected for her, he would nitpick any dress that she chose for herself. Serenity knew what was going on in that domineering mind of his. She went to change her clothes while saying, ¡°All the clothes here were given to me by you. Whether they¡¯re good or not, aren¡¯t they all from you? What difference does it make?¡± The dresses she bought for herself as well as the ones given to her by her aunt were all in Brynfield. Zachary smiled. ¡°That¡¯s why I said that it¡¯s the same no matter which dress you wear. You¡¯re beautiful no matter what.¡± Serenity grumbled. She followed his wishes. After she changed into the gown, she stood in front of arge mirror and finally realized what was off about the dress. This gown was the most conservative of all the dresses. It covered her shoulders, her back, and basically every patch of skin. The hemline was long and would drag along the ground unless she wore heels. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°Beautiful. My wife is so beautiful. You¡¯re really beautiful. I feel like even my face isn¡¯t worthy of you.¡± The man who had ulterior motives felt like he had just drunk a pot of honey. He sang her praises endlessly, but he did not know how to use his synonyms and kept calling her beautiful. Serenity turned around in amusement and pinched his arm, saying, ¡°Save the ttery. Don¡¯t think I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re thinking. You just don¡¯t like the other dresses because they expose my shoulders and back, right?¡± ¡°No matter how exposed they are, they don¡¯t expose my cleavage. What are you afraid of? I don¡¯t wear dresses that expose my cleavage anyway.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°My wife is really smart. She¡¯s getting smarter by the day. What do I do? I love my wife more and more. I can¡¯t leave my wife.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°Can you at least use some synonyms?¡± ¡°These are my truest thoughts. They¡¯re the sincerest words from my heart.¡± The man also admitted that he did not know how to embellish his praises like other people did He only knew how to say the mostmon phrases. However, they were his heartfelt words and came from the bottom of his heart. Chapter 1321 Chapter 1321 Chapter 1321 ¡°I¡¯ll help you with your makeup, honey.¡± Serenityplied with his wishes and changed into the most conservative dress in her wardrobe. Zachary volunteered to help his wife with her makeup again. Serenity refused without even thinking about it. ¡°I still care about my appearance.¡± Her words made Zachary¡¯s mouth p several times without saying anything. His reaction amused Serenity, and she asked with a smile, ¡°Do you know how to do makeup? Don¡¯t think I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re thinking. You¡¯re going to paint my face like a ghost so no one will look at me.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°I¡¯ve never helped a woman with her makeup before, but I wouldn¡¯t make you look like a ghost to scare people.¡± ¡°Forget it, I can¡¯t trust you. I¡¯ll do it myself. Go and get yourself ready. We¡¯ll be heading out soon.¡± Zachary refused to leave and said, ¡°I don¡¯t have anything to prepare. I just need to change into a suit, switch my home slippers for leather shoes, and the finishing touch will be you helping me with my tie.¡± He did not need to apply makeup. He was born handsome. Makeup would only make his handsome face look ugly instead. Zachary York never wore makeup. ¡°We don¡¯t have to rush. It doesn¡¯t matter if we¡¯rete as long as we show up.¡± In previous years, Zachary always showed up veryte to the Marshalls¡® banquet. He would not stay long before leaving either. He was used to beingte and leaving early. Serenity went back to the vanity and sat down,bing her hair while saying, ¡°You¡¯re used to being late and leaving early.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t like to be surrounded by them.¡± ¡°It¡¯s because you¡¯re the eldest young master of the York family.¡± Zachary said, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t be able to marry you if I wasn¡¯t the eldest.¡± If he was not the eldest, his nana would not have let him marry Serenity. Knock, knock. Someone knocked on the door. ¡°Go open the door.¡± Serenity chased him away lest he chatter in her ears endlessly. She never dreamt that one day, the mature and calm Mr. York would be a broken record, nagging her so much that her head hurt. Zachary darted over to press a kiss on her cheeks. Just when she was about to p him away, he swiftly ran off to open the door. ¡°Mr. Zachary.¡± A maid stood at the door of the room and said respectfully when Zachary opened the door, ¡°Your parents have arrived.¡± Zachary hummed and closed the door again. ¡°Who was it?¡± Serenity asked as she put on her makeup. ¡°My parents are here.¡± ¡°Well, why aren¡¯t you going downstairs then?¡± ¡°This is their son¡¯s home. They¡¯re free to do whatever they want here. They don¡¯t need me to apany them.¡± Zachary went up behind Serenity and watched her put on her makeup. ¡°Honey, you don¡¯t need to dress up so beautifully. In fact, I think you look great au naturel. You¡¯re naturally beautiful, so you¡¯re still the most beautiful woman on earth even without makeup.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t say I¡¯m the most beautiful woman on earth. You¡¯ll make people die ofughter.¡± ¡°You¡¯re the most beautiful woman in my eyes. Just light makeup is enough.¡± If asked for his opinion, he would say that his wife was better off without makeup. There would be many people tonight. He really did not like other men staring at her. Even if they looked at her secretly, he would still be upset. This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Just go downstairs already!¡± Chapter 1322 Chapter 1322 Chapter 1322 Serenity could not stand his constant nagging. Zachary¡¯s thin lips pursed as heined, ¡°Honey, why are you so mean to me? You¡¯re annoyed with me.¡± Serenity wanted to kick him out. ¡°If you don¡¯t go out, I¡¯m sleeping in the guest room tonight.¡± Zachary turned around and walked out, muttering pitifully, ¡°My wife is annoyed with me, my wife is annoyed with me¡­ Serenity was speechless. She did not know whether tough or cry when it came to this man. Her body and soul already belonged to him¨Cwhat did he have to worry about? Two minutester, Zachary sat across from his parents. He looked at his father, who was decked out in a white suit, and said, ¡°Dad, why are you wearing a white suit at your age? Are you trying topare with me?¡± Liam said, ¡°What¡¯s that tone? Am I that old? I take care of my appearance. Your mom says we look like brothers if we stand together, not father and son. Your mom says I look dreamy dressed in a white suit, like Prince Charming in fairy tales.¡± Tania echoed her husband¡¯s words. ¡°Yes, I think your father looks very dashing in a white suit. Your dad has always been the Prince Charming in my heart.¡± She was also dressed in a conservative but elegant evening gown. Tania¡¯s elegance was all natural. No matter what she wore, it could not hide her noble air. ¡°Zack, did you fight with Seren again? Your tone was so confrontational. You targeted your dad as soon as we arrived. Or did wee at a bad time and interrupt you two¡­¡± Since Liam retired, Tania did not need to apany her husband to various banquets and fundraisers, so the couple had not shown up at banquets for a long time. Tonight, they finally returned to the scene because Tania wanted to let everyone know that she had an excellent rtionship with her daughter¨Cinw. It was also to help pave the way for Serenity. She wanted to introduce Serenity to thedies who were closely rted to the York family. In the future, Serenity would be thedy of the family. She had to apany Zachary to various banquets, fundraisers, etc, so she had to create good rtions with the otherdies. She held arge influence as the woman who shared the same bed as Zachary ¡°Nothing happened.¡± Zachary would not admit to his parents that his beloved wife drove him downstairs. ¡°That¡¯s good. Is Seren still changing? I¡¯ll go check up on her.¡± Tania stood up and went upstairs. After she left, Liam asked his son softly, ¡°Zack, are you sure you didn¡¯t fight with Seren? I¡¯m a man too, and I also like to spoil my wife. I can tell from your expression that you¡¯re unhappy.¡± Zachary looked at his father silently. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Liam realized what was going on and straightened up. ¡°Your mom said she wanted to show up with her daughter¨Cinw, so I apanied her over. Otherwise, I wouldn¡¯t havee even if you begged me to.¡± The banquet tonight was a grand one, so there would be many reporters taking pictures. Tania chose to show up today with her daughter¨Cinw. The reporters would certainly swarm to take pictures of the mother and daughter¨Cinw, and everyone would be able to tell at a nce if their rtionship was good or not. The reason she did not show up in public with her daughter¨Cinw often was because she was an open¨Cminded mother¨Cinw and would not take up her daughter¨Cinw¡¯s time with her son. As a mother, her child¡¯s happiness came first. Zachary¡¯s happiness was given to him by Serenity. When he was with Serenity, he was just an ordinary man who felt emotions like joy and anger. Naturally, she would want Zachary to spend more time with Serenity. How could she lord over her daughter¨Cinw? ¡°You think too much, Dad. If I¡¯m going to beg anyone toe back, I¡¯ll only beg Seren.¡± Liam was speechless. ¡°You little brat.¡± ¡°I¡¯m a brat, but you¡¯re no better. I¡¯m your son and followed your example.¡± Liam paused before stating, ¡°Men who have a wife to dote over them are really different. In the past, you never so much as made a peep when you wereshed. Look how sharp¨Ctongued you¡¯ve be now. ¡°Serenity really is a good daughter¨Cinw!¡± She was the person who changed his son. Chapter 1323 Chapter 1323 Chapter 1323 ¡°Yes, my wife trained me well.¡± Liam opened his mouth but did not know what to say. His son was even more henpecked than he was. While the father and son chatted, the noblest pair of mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw in Wiltspoon descended the stairs. Zachary recognized at a nce that the jewelry Serenity was wearing was not from him. He knew that his mother gave it to her deliberately without having to ask. Indeed, Tania went upstairs to see her daughter¨Cinw put on makeup just to give her the set of jewelry stuffed in her bag to her daughter¨Cinw. In her words, the jewelry set was too bright for someone of her age, so it was more suitable for Serenity. Tania was born and raised in a wealthy family and received a lot of jewelry since she was a child. After she married into the York family, she was deeply favored by her husband, who also gave her a lot of jewelry. Her mother¨Cinw also presented her with several sets of expensive jewelry when she gave birth to Zachary. Tania did not have a daughter, so her precious jewelry was naturally for her daughter¨Cinw. Serenity was her only daughter¨Cinw now, so her giving Serenity jewelry was the same as how Grandma May gave her a set of jewelry when she gave birth to Zachary Serenity, who was well¨Ctrained by Audrey after being taken to several banquets previously, changed into a fancy dress, put on light makeup, and wore the jewelry her mother¨Cinw gifted her. She looked so beautiful and dignified that Zachary was stunned at the sight of her. Liam snubbed his son in his heart. His son was destined to be controlled by Serenity for the rest of his life. Serenity would retort if she heard Liam¡¯s thoughts, ¡°I think I¡¯m the one being controlled for the rest of my life.¡± ¡°Babe, look at the jewelry Mom gave me. Does it look good?¡± Zachary nodded. ¡°Yes, but I think you¡¯ll look better in the jewelry that I gave you.¡¯ # Taniaughed and scolded him, ¡°Are you going to be jealous of your own mother? Seren, you¡¯re the only one who can tolerate how petty he is.¡± Serenity gave her husband a look. She was not the one calling him petty. It was his own mother. A mother knew her son best. Her mother¨Cinw was telling the truth. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. Let¡¯s go.¡± Liam stood and called out to his wife, ready to leave for Wiltspoon Hotel. ¡°Dad, Zachary hasn¡¯t changed his clothes yet.¡± Liam turned to his son and said, ¡°Why are you still standing there like a wooden block? You really are like a wooden block. You don¡¯t move unless someone pushes you. Only someone like Serenity can tolerate a wooden block like you. The husband and wife praised their daughter¨Cinw while stepping over their son. Zachary grumbled, ¡°I don¡¯t know which one of us is your real child.¡± Then, he stood up and went upstairs to get changed. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. Serenity felt like her inws were the best inws in the world. Zachary changed swiftly. He did not put on his coat or his tie and carried them in his hands when he came downstairs. Liam pulled his wife outside. He could not stand to see his arrogant and jealous son. Serenity walked over naturally, took the coat from her husband¡¯s hands, and helped him put it or Then, she started tying his tie. After straightening his clothes, she took a step back and looked at him, praising, ¡°As expected a mannequin¨Cyou look good no matter what you wear.¡± Then, she took his arm and smiled. ¡°Let¡¯s not keep your parents waiting.¡± ¡°You¡¯re not allowed to sleep in the guest room tonight.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t.¡± Serenity could not help butugh. ¡°I was just scaring you.¡± She had no choice. It was the only way she could deal with this man. With Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s status in Wiltspoon, even Zachary had to show him full respect. His business receptions were always extravagant and guests felt honored to be invited to a banquet he hosted. Chapter 1324 Chapter 1324 Chapter 1324 Wiltspoon Hotel was closed for business since the very The venue had been set up. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. afternoon. As soon as the sky darkened, some small¨Ctime bosses arrived at the hotel. They felt that their status was lower, so they would be able to chat a little with the Marshall family if they arrived earlier. It would be their fortune if they managed to meet Old Mr. Marshall. If they camete, there would be too many people, and the venue would be full of influential bosses. Small¨Ctimers like them would be marginalized. In the past, Zachary did not arrive until it was veryte. If he showed up, Clive would not appear. Tonight, many people wondered whether the two most exceptional CEOs in Wiltspoon would appear together. Would the new Mrs. York apany Mr. York to the banquet? Although Mrs. York had been very active in the upper¨Css circles recently, she was always escorted by her aunt, Mrs. Stone. Thus, there were many rumors that Mrs. York did not get along with her mother¨Cinw because she never attended a banquet with her mother-inw. Her mother¨Cinw did not want to train her, so she went to Mrs. Stone instead. Although Tania took Serenity shopping together after hearing those rumors to show that they got along very well, there were still many whispers behind their backs. The guests kepting. Except for Kevin and Grandma May who were in Jensburg, as well as the younger members who had not debuted in society yet, Zachary and his family arrived one after another. Callum came with his parents. After greeting the Marshalls and chatting with his acquaintances, he went in front of the hotel and waited. He was waiting for Camryn. Camryn did not want to attend the banquet, but her mother went to her flower shop with a group of bodyguards at noon and took her back to the Newman residence without a word. Her mother threw her an evening dress and told her to get changed. She even threatened Camryn that if Camryn did not get changed herself, she would tell the bodyguards to lend a hand. Camryn was a pure girl who never even had a boyfriend, and the bodyguards were all men. How could her mother say something like that? Her heart, which was already scarred by her own mother, still stung. With no other choice, she changed into the evening dress her mother threw at her. It did not fit her well. It was Carrie¡¯s dress without the need to ask. She felt ufortable in the dress. It was a strapless dress that exposed her shoulders and back. Her skin was fair and her curves were exquisite. Wearing this dress entuated the beauty of her figure. Camryn, who was already beautiful, was caught by her mother and forced to put on light makeup, making her look even more captivating and refined. Mrs. Newman looked at how her elder daughter was so much more beautiful than her darling second daughter after dressing up and she felt so jealous and angry that she could not help but pinch Camryn. Camryn reflexively gave a kick at the pain. Mrs. Newman, who was kicked, got angrier and raised her hand to p her daughter. ¡°Will you dare bring me to the party if you p me? My face will swell.¡± Camryn¡¯s cold words made Mrs. Newman¡¯s hand freeze in the air. However, she still pinched her waist fiercely and cussed, ¡°Little b*tch.¡± ¡°I¡¯m your daughter. If I¡¯m a little b*tch, then you¡¯re an old b*tch.¡± ¡°You-!¡± Mrs. Newman was furious. However, she stopped calling Camryn a b*tch. It was because she really was Camryn¡¯s mother! Chapter 1325 Chapter 1325 Chapter 1325 Wiltspoon Hotel was closed for business since the very The venue had been set up. afternoon. As soon as the sky darkened, some small¨Ctime bosses arrived at the hotel. They felt that their status was lower, so they would be able to chat a little with the Marshall family if they arrived earlier. It would be their fortune if they managed to meet Old Mr. Marshall. If they camete, there would be too many people, and the venue would be full of influential bosses. Small¨Ctimers like them would be marginalized. In the past, Zachary did not arrive until it was veryte. If he showed up, Clive would not appear. Tonight, many people wondered whether the two most exceptional CEOs in Wiltspoon would appear together. Would the new Mrs. York apany Mr. York to the banquet? Although Mrs. York had been very active in the upper¨Css circles recently, she was always escorted by her aunt, Mrs. Stone. Thus, there were many rumors that Mrs. York did not get along with her mother¨Cinw because she never attended a banquet with her mother-inw. Her mother¨Cinw did not want to train her, so she went to Mrs. Stone instead. Although Tania took Serenity shopping together after hearing those rumors to show that they got along very well, there were still many whispers behind their backs. The guests kepting. Except for Kevin and Grandma May who were in Jensburg, as well as the younger members who had not debuted in society yet, Zachary and his family arrived one after another. Callum came with his parents. After greeting the Marshalls and chatting with his acquaintances, he went in front of the hotel and waited. He was waiting for Camryn. Camryn did not want to attend the banquet, but her mother went to her flower shop with a group of bodyguards at noon and took her back to the Newman residence without a word. Her mother threw her an evening dress and told her to get changed. She even threatened Camryn that if Camryn did not get changed herself, she would tell the bodyguards to lend a hand. Camryn was a pure girl who never even had a boyfriend, and the bodyguards were all men. How could her mother say something like that? Her heart, which was already scarred by her own mother, still stung. With no other choice, she changed into the evening dress her mother threw at her. It did not fit her well. It was Carrie¡¯s dress without the need to ask. She felt ufortable in the dress. It was a strapless dress that exposed her shoulders and back. Her skin was fair and her curves were exquisite. Wearing this dress entuated the beauty of her figure. Camryn, who was already beautiful, was caught by her mother and forced to put on light makeup, making her look even more captivating and refined. Mrs. Newman looked at how her elder daughter was so much more beautiful than her darling second daughter after dressing up and she felt so jealous and angry that she could not help but pinch Camryn. Camryn reflexively gave a kick at the pain. Mrs. Newman, who was kicked, got angrier and raised her hand to p her daughter. ¡°Will you dare bring me to the party if you p me? My face will swell.¡± Camryn¡¯s cold words made Mrs. Newman¡¯s hand freeze in the air. However, she still pinched her waist fiercely and cussed, ¡°Little b*tch.¡± ¡°I¡¯m your daughter. If I¡¯m a little b*tch, then you¡¯re an old b*tch.¡± Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. ¡°You-!¡± Mrs. Newman was furious. However, she stopped calling Camryn a b*tch. It was because she really was Camryn¡¯s mother! Chapter 1326 Chapter 1326 Chapter 1324 Wiltspoon Hotel was closed for business since the very The venue had been set up. afternoon. As soon as the sky darkened, some small¨Ctime bosses arrived at the hotel. They felt that their status was lower, so they would be able to chat a little with the Marshall family if they arrived earlier. It would be their fortune if they managed to meet Old Mr. Marshall. If they camete, there would be too many people, and the venue would be full of influential bosses. Small¨Ctimers like them would be marginalized. In the past, Zachary did not arrive until it was veryte. If he showed up, Clive would not appear. Tonight, many people wondered whether the two most exceptional CEOs in Wiltspoon would appear together. Would the new Mrs. York apany Mr. York to the banquet? Although Mrs. York had been very active in the upper¨Css circles recently, she was always escorted by her aunt, Mrs. Stone. Thus, there were many rumors that Mrs. York did not get along with her mother¨Cinw because she never attended a banquet with her mother-inw. Her mother¨Cinw did not want to train her, so she went to Mrs. Stone instead. Although Tania took Serenity shopping together after hearing those rumors to show that they got along very well, there were still many whispers behind their backs. The guests kepting. Except for Kevin and Grandma May who were in Jensburg, as well as the younger members who had not debuted in society yet, Zachary and his family arrived one after another. Callum came with his parents. After greeting the Marshalls and chatting with his acquaintances, he went in front of the hotel and waited. He was waiting for Camryn. Camryn did not want to attend the banquet, but her mother went to her flower shop with a group of bodyguards at noon and took her back to the Newman residence without a word. Her mother threw her an evening dress and told her to get changed. She even threatened Camryn that if Camryn did not get changed herself, she would tell the bodyguards to lend a hand. Camryn was a pure girl who never even had a boyfriend, and the bodyguards were all men. How could her mother say something like that? Her heart, which was already scarred by her own mother, still stung. With no other choice, she changed into the evening dress her mother threw at her. It did not fit her well. It was Carrie¡¯s dress without the need to ask. She felt ufortable in the dress. It was a strapless dress that exposed her shoulders and back. Her skin was fair and her curves were exquisite. Wearing this dress entuated the beauty of her figure. Camryn, who was already beautiful, was caught by her mother and forced to put on light makeup, making her look even more captivating and refined. Mrs. Newman looked at how her elder daughter was so much more beautiful than her darling second daughter after dressing up and she felt so jealous and angry that she could not help but pinch Camryn. Camryn reflexively gave a kick at the pain. Mrs. Newman, who was kicked, got angrier and raised her hand to p her daughter. ¡°Will you dare bring me to the party if you p me? My face will swell.¡± Camryn¡¯s cold words made Mrs. Newman¡¯s hand freeze in the air. However, she still pinched her waist fiercely and cussed, ¡°Little b*tch.¡± ¡°I¡¯m your daughter. If I¡¯m a little b*tch, then you¡¯re an old b*tch.¡± ¡°You-!¡± Mrs. Newman was furious. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. However, she stopped calling Camryn a b*tch. It was because she really was Camryn¡¯s mother! Chapter 1327 Chapter 1327 Chapter 1327 It was not that Mr. Newman did not want his daughter to marry into the York family but rather it was a question of whether it was possible. Serenity reached the top without even knowing how, but other people would not be able to step into Wildridge Manor no matter how hard they tried. It was really infuriating. ¡°Then, we¡¯ll choose Mr. Stone?¡± Mr. Newman looked at his wife and said, ¡°You be muddle¨Cheaded when you care about Carrie. You only think about marrying our daughter to the best families, but you forget their rtionships. Serenity is Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece. Do you think Carrie will have a good time as Mrs. Stone¡¯s daughter¨Cinw?¡± Mrs. Newman was speechless. Yes, she forgot about that. ¡°Carrie is still young, so there¡¯s no need to rush. We can take our time to pick. Our top priority is to get her out of jail, find someone whom the York family respects to mediate, and let Serenity give up on suing Carrie.¡± Mr. Newman felt that as long as Serenity was firmly seated in the position of the missus of the York family, his precious daughter would not be able to marry into the gentry of Wiltspoon. He began to set his sights on young talents from other cities.Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. While the couple talked, Camryn finally came out of the house. Mrs. Newman did not want Camryn to ride in the same car as them, but Mr. Newman said, ¡± Remember our n tonight. Don¡¯t let a little thing spoil it. It¡¯s Camryn¡¯s debut at a banquet, and she¡¯s your daughter. What will people think and say about you if you make her ride with the bodyguards?¡± ¡°It¡¯s just a matter of dressing her up and selling her for a good price. Everyone in Wiltspoon knows her status as the eldest of the Newman family.¡± Mrs. Newman grumbled, but she got out and pulled Camryn into the car. Just like that, the three of them arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel. * Upon arriving, they found that the parking lot in front of the entrance was filled. Those who camete drove their cars into the basement parking of the hotel. Mr. Newman and his family got off at the entrance of the hotel and asked the driver to park in the basement. All the movers and shakers of Wiltspoon gathered in the hotel. The Newman family had assets. worth more than a billion, but they did not show off their wealth in a high profile, so others only knew that their business was going well outside the city. Except for a few influential families, the others did not know exactly how much the Newmans made. Therefore, the Newrnans were not considered filthy rich, so not many people came to tter them. ¡°Mr. Newman, Mrs. Newman, Ms. Newman.¡± Callum, who was waiting by the entrance of the hotel, finally saw his fianc¨¦e arrive. He pretended as if he just happened to bump into the family of three. He walked over and greeted them politely. ¡°Mr. York.¡± Mrs. Newman smiled when she saw Callum and greeted him formally. There were many people at the entrance when Callum greeted them. She felt proud of the attention. Even Mr. Newman felt so too. Although Callum was not the head of the family, he was the COO of York Corporation and had won Zachary¡¯s trust and reliance. He was the second young master after all¨Chis status and identity were second only to Zachary. He was also the most popr son¨Cinw candidate amongst thedies. Not even Zachary was as popr as Callum when he was unmarried. It was because Zachary was too cold. On the other hand, Callum was mild¨Ctempered, amiable, and gentle. He was easier to get along with than Zachary. Callum¡¯s eyes shone with amazement when he looked at his fianc¨¦e. He knew she was beautiful, but he did not expect her to look so gorgeous after dressing up a little. However, her dress was a little revealing. If he were the one choosing an evening gown for her, he would not pick one that showed off her shoulders and backs. The men of the York family were all the same. They could not stand to see their wives reveal some skin. Chapter 1328 Chapter 1328 Chapter 1328 Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Even though many gowns were made in that style, they just did not like it. The York men wanted to cover their women tightly; not even exposing their arms. At that moment, Camryn¡¯s appearance made others want to bite into her. ¡°Ms. Newman looks very beautiful tonight.¡± Callum praised Camryn before turning back to the Newman couple. ¡°Mr. and Mrs. Newman, I saw an acquaintance of mine and will go to say hello to him. Head on inside. Many bosses are here already.¡± ¡°Go ahead, Mr. York,¡± Mr. Newman spoke politely. He caught the amazement in Callum¡¯s eyes when thetter looked at Camryn earlier. However, Callum only nced at her twice, praised her, and stopped looking at her. It was clear that he was not charmed by Camryn. Mr. Newman thought that if Camryn could bewitch Callum, he would give her to Callum and let Callum speak up for Carrie. Serenity would definitely spare Carrie for the sake of her brother¨Cin- What a shame; even the stunning Camryn could not tempt Callum. They had no choice but to move ording to their n and sell Camryn to a man from the hosting family of this banquet, the Marshalls. In any case, the man had to possess some standing in the family. The Marshalls and Yorks were family friends. Even the young masters of the Yorks were attending Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s banquet, so it was clear the rtionship between the two families was closer than others thought. Mr. and Mrs. Newman wanted to ask the Marshall family to mediate for them. After Callum left, the Newman family walked into the hotel under the guidance of the staff. Callum was merely making an excuse earlier, but unexpectedly, he really did see someone familiar. Josh came with his fianc¨¦e, Jasmine. His car stopped in front of the hotel. He got off with Jasmine before telling the driver to park in the basement parking lot. Josh had always used to drive himself, but he got a driver tonight so he did not have to worry about driving under influence. Josh was as handsome as ever, and Jasmine was all dolled up. She brought Serenity to the banquets held in previous years, so she was familiar with the environment. After getting out of the car, Jasmine lifted her gown to enter the hotel. She wondered if Serenity and Elisa had arrived. ¡°Jasmine.¡± As soon as Josh got out of the car, he saw his fianc¨¦e leaving him behind and was about to enter the hotel by herself. He quickly stopped Jasmine. If he spoke up a littleter, he would be a pitiful man left behind by his fianc¨¦e. Jasmine turned to look at him and asked, ¡°What is it?¡± Josh was speechless. ¡°Don¡¯t you have to wait for me¡­?¡± ¡°You know the way. This ce should be as familiar as home to you.¡± Josh quickly walked over, wrapped an arm around Jasmine¡¯s waist, and whispered in her ear, ¡°Ms. Sox, you must remember that you¡¯re my date tonight! Important things should be repeated thrice. You¡¯re my date. You¡¯re my date. You¡¯re my date! ¡°How can you go in by yourself without waiting for me? Hold my arm. Don¡¯t you see other couples doing the same?¡± Jasmine pulled away his hand that was holding her waist, then took his hand and intertwined their fingers. ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll take you inside with me.¡± She had to do this lest he act bitter. Chapter 1329 Chapter 1329 Chapter 1329 Wiltspoon Hotel was owned by York Corporation. Josh was the administrative executive and came in and out of the hotel every day, but he still wanted her to take him inside. Josh said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to rush in. Your friend hasn¡¯t arrived yet. I didn¡¯t see his car parked at the entrance. ¡°It¡¯s not just Zachary. I didn¡¯t see the Stone family¡¯s car either. They¡¯re not as punctual as I am.¡± Jasmine was not convinced. ¡°Maybe their cars are in the underground parking lot.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t believe me, just ask the lobby manager.¡± Jasmine pursed her lips and let go of Josh¡¯s hand to take his arm instead, saying, ¡°Okay, let¡¯s go inside.¡± Josh contentedly took Jasmine into the hotel. Callum, an old acquaintance, was left standing at the entrance of the hotel. Josh did not say a word to him. Callum was speechless. Oh, the woes of being a bachelor. No matter how close a friend was, once the said friend had a partner, they no longer cared about you. Fortunately, he was just making an excuse. It was not that he was not charmed by Camryn. He just did not want Mr. and Mrs. Newman to notice that he cared about her. Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. He returned to the hotel. He noticed that Mrs. Newman and his fianc¨¦e were chatting with the otherdies. Many guests were surprised that Mrs. Newman appeared with Camryn. Smart people soon figured out why. Camryn was twenty¨Csix years old and was at the age to get married. Mrs. Newman suddenly appeared with Camryn because she hoped to choose a husband for her daughter. Camryn looked pretty, but she was treated like she was invisible by her family. Furthermore, she was blind. In order to keep on living, she opened a flower store by herself and earned money to eke out a living. Thedies disliked such conditions. No one was willing to marry their son to Camryn. Most importantly, she was blind. Callum found his mother in the crowd and whispered a few words to her. The woman looked at Camryn, who was being led away by Mrs. Newman, and said to her son, ¡°Go handle your business. I¡¯ll take care of my future daughter¨Cinw.¡± If thosedies learned that Camryn, a blind woman they looked down on, had long been. designated as the second missus of the York family, their eyeballs would pop out of their sockets and roll on the ground. ¡°I wonder if Mr. and Mrs. York will appear together,¡± someone piped up. Another person echoed, ¡°We¡¯ll know when Mr. York shows upter.¡± ¡°Maybe Mrs. York wille with Mrs. Stone again. If that¡¯s the case¡­¡± That person trailed off. It seemed they were waiting to watch a show. If Serenity, the missus of the York family, showed up on an asion tonight with Mrs. Stone again, it would be a p to Zachary and the York family¡¯s faces. ¡°No matter how ignorant Mrs. York is, she can¡¯t be that ignorant, right?¡± someone muttered. ¡°Why not? She grew up in the countryside and doesn¡¯t know what the world is like. It¡¯s normal for her to be afraid. Mrs. Stone is her aunt, so she won¡¯t have to be afraid if she follows her aunt. A person like her won¡¯t think that far.¡± The person who said those words was obviously hostile toward Serenity. Chapter 1330 Chapter 1330 Chapter 1330 The same person also looked down on Serenity¡¯s background. A country bumpkin sprinted up the socialdder just because she saved Old Mrs. York. There were so many elders in the York family, but no one raised an objection and allowed a country bumpkin to be the eldest missus of the family. She would be thedy of the family in the future. Was the York family not afraid that Serenity¡¯s ipetence would disgrace the family and make them theughingstock of others? If Serenity had married another son of the York family, she might not have attracted that much jealousy. ¡°You¡¯re right. I also think that Serenity isn¡¯t insightful enough. She doesn¡¯t think things through and is too impulsive. She takes advantage of her husband¡¯s status and doesn¡¯t show respect to many people, so she casually meddles in other people¡¯s business and makes enemies for Mr. York.¡± This time it was Mrs. Newman who spoke. ¡°Exactly. Serenity is really meddlesome. You¡¯re Mrs. Newman, right? I remember Serenity meddling with your daughters¡® business during the Dowlings¡® party back then. I called Tania out of the kindness of my heart and told her to watch her daughter¨Cinw, but she scolded me and blocked my number.¡± It was Mrs. Walker, who was full of hostility and dislike for Serenity after Tania rebuked and blocked her. Mrs. Walker had been furious. She had meant well, but Tania snubbed her. If Serenity were her daughter¨Cinw and dared meddle in other people¡¯s affairs and cause trouble for her son, she would have told her son to divorce immediately and marry apliant wife. Even if Tania wanted to protect her daughter¨Cinw, she should have taken into consideration the situation. Protecting Serenity like that would only cause Serenity to get into more trouble in the future. The York family would be ruined in the hands of Serenity sooner orter. Their reputation would be destroyed by her. ¡°Tania has arrived, and she came with her son and daughter¨Cinw.¡± While Mrs. Newman and Mrs. Walker were running their mouths about Serenity, someone suddenly raised their voice. Except for Old Mr. Marshall, everyone else in the Marshall family stood up to greet them. The otherdies exchanged nces. Mrs. Walker nudged Mrs. Newman and whispered, ¡°Tania hasn¡¯t attended a banquet for a long time You¡¯re lucky to see her tonight.¡± Mrs. Newman replied softly, ¡°She¡¯s attending out of respect to Old Mr. Marshall.¡± ¡°That¡¯s true. Everyone here respects Old Mr. Marshall. He¡¯s kind¨Chearted enough to hold such a grand business reception once or twice a year so people can get together to talk about our daily lives. The men can even negotiate business.¡± The annual Marshalls¡® banquet was like a feast for Wiltspoonians, where all kinds ofpany heads could make friends with people they had no chance to meet during ordinary times. They could also try to negotiate and do business. Thus, Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s status in the business world was extraordinary. After all, even the York family revered him. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Old Mrs. York would even call Old Mr. Marshall by name affectionately when she saw him. Outside the hotel, Serenity was escorted out of the car by her man. He was very gentlemanly and took special care of her. He was worried she would be unsteady while wearing stilettos. Serenity said to him with a low smile, ¡°If I had to wear heels this high in the past, I definitely wouldn¡¯t be able to walk, but I¡¯m used to it now. Don¡¯t worry. I promise I won¡¯t embarrass you tonight.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not afraid of being embarrassed. What¡¯s important is that you¡¯re happy and not wronged.¡± Serenity¡¯s finger mischievously tickled the palm of his hand as sheughed. ¡°I¡¯m your wife. Who would dare cross me?¡± This little action of hers caused Zachary to want to tie her into his arms and kiss her fiercely a million times. She was simply a little minx, always teasing him in public so he could not punish her. Chapter 1332 Chapter 1332 Chapter 1332 Mrs. Marshall thought Serenity¡¯s voice was pleasant. She held her hand in a friendly manner and complimented her. Serenity responded to everyone¡¯spliments with grace, which disappointed those who wanted to see her make a fool of herself. Some people thought Mrs. Stone was indeed good at teaching. Serenity had only attended a few banquets with Mrs. Stone, yet she had managed to train a country bumpkin into a graceful missus of a wealthy family. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. The York family of four went on to meet Old Mr. Marshall. After looking at Serenity for some time, Old Mr. Marshall did not say a word. However, he gave her a generous gift in front of everyone. He even told Zachary, ¡°You two must live a happy life. Your nana won¡¯t go wrong.¡± Zachary was soft toward Old Mr. Marshall. ¡°Thank you, Old Mr. Marshall. I¡¯ll cherish and love. Seren a lot.¡± Old Mr. Marshall smiled kindly. He was much older than Old Mrs. York, and his energy could not compare to hers. He would only meet youngsters of higher status and prominence like Zachary. Ordinary people would not dare to disturb him. Guests from wealthy families gradually arrived. Mrs. Stone and his husband came slightlyter with their daughter. Clive and his wife were absent. Alice was pregnant and had terrible morning sickness. Many people were attending the banquet, so there were worries about someone bumping into her. Therefore, Clive strongly disagreed about his wife coming. He was absent as well to apany his wife back home. The second son of the Stone family did not do business, so he never participated in any events of the business world. Therefore, only Mr. and Mrs. Stone came with Elisa. They went to greet Old Mr. Marshall too. Old Mr. Marshall did not spot Clive and his wife, so he asked Mrs. Stone, ¡°Why aren¡¯t Clive and Alice here?¡± Mrs. Stone smiled and said, ¡°Alice is pregnant, so it¡¯s inconvenient for her toe over. Clive is apanying her at home. He told me to apologize to you in his stead for his absence tonight.¡± Old Mr. Marshallughed. ¡°They¡¯re all youngsters I¡¯ve watched over as they grew up. How can I be petty about them noting because of their own matters? Alice being pregnant is good news. It¡¯s better that she doesn¡¯te. There are too many people here. It¡¯ll be bad if someone bumps into her. ¡°You must invite me to the baby¡¯s sip and see shower next year.¡± Joy filled the Marshalls¡® eyes upon hearing Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s words. They thought he would be able to live for several years more if he kept thinking about the Stone family¡¯s celebration. Mrs. Stone smiled. ¡°That¡¯s for sure. You muste to my house and have a ss of celebratory wine to bless my grandson or granddaughter. You¡¯re the person with the greatest fortune.¡± Tania had learned from Mrs. Marshall that Old Mr. Marshall had been unwell recently. He kept talking about histe spouse, who had been deceased for many years. His family was worried that his time would be up soon, especially since he moved his banquet up by half a year. It was worrisome. Tania joined the conversation after hearing Old Mr. Marshall talking to Mrs. Stone about the sip and see. She used aining tone on purpose and said to Old Mr. Marshall, ¡°You¡¯re only thinking about attending the sip and see shower for Clive¡¯s child. Don¡¯t you wish to attend my granddaughter¡¯s celebration too?¡± Old Mr. Marshallughed. He chided Tania gently, ¡°You¡¯reining about me now, huh? I¡¯ll attend all of them. If you have a granddaughter, I¡¯ll definitely go to her sip and see.¡± ¡°Just you wait. I¡¯ll definitely have a granddaughter. I have three sons, so I¡¯ll have three daughters¨Cin- law. There¡¯ll be one of them who¡¯ll be able to birth a granddaughter for me.¡± Everyoneughed. If Old Mr. Marshall wished to attend the celebration for Tania¡¯s granddaughter, it would probably not come true even if he lived for a long time. Who was unaware that the Yorks were like a family of monks? They only had sons and no daughters. Families who did not have sons were utterly jealous of the Yorks¡® ability to give birth to sons. However, they did not know about the fervent wish of the Yorks to have a daughter. That was human nature¨Cthose with sons would wish for a daughter, while those with daughters wanted sons. Everyone wanted to have the best of both worlds. Chapter 1333 Chapter 1333 Chapter 1333 After greeting the hosts, everyone started looking for their friends to chat with or discuss business. At first, Serenity stayed by Zachary¡¯s side. He did not have to go to other people to discuss coborations as there were many CEOs who wished to coborate with him. Serenity watched as Zachary became the spotlight no matter where he went. Everyone revolved around him. She whispered to her husband, ¡°I overestimated myself when I said I wanted to be on equal standing as you.¡± Rather than thinking of being on par with him, running behind him would be good enough for her. Zachary raised their interlocked hands. He stared into her with smiling eyes and said gently,¡± We¡¯re holding hands and standing shoulder to shoulder now. ¡°Honey, to me, there¡¯s no distance between us. If there were any, it would be me being a man and you being a woman.¡± Serenity smiled. She had learned socializing from Aunt Audrey for some time. She figured out and learned many things along the way and gained more self¨Cconfidence. Zachary had an advantageous starting line. Catching up to him was impossible for her. However, the fact that she was his wife was permanent. Her inws had never objected to their rtionship or disliked her. There was no reason for her to bring trouble to herself.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity decided to go with the flow. She would continue working hard and ept how far her career could progress. Serenity resolved to confront everything she had to as Mrs. York calmly. She would ept everything, such as praise, criticism, and sarcastic or hateful remarks. No one could make everyone like them. No matter how well a person performed, there would always be haters nitpicking. It would be fine as long as a person had a clear conscience. There was no need to care about what others said because their mouths belonged to themselves. After Serenity got married to Zachary, she reached the prime of her life. Many people were jealous of her. ¡°Babe, I think I love you so much right now.¡± Zachary¡¯s gaze was soft. His eyes were filled with happiness. ¡°I love you very much too.¡± ¡°Zachary.¡± Josh brought Jasmine over. They had a ss of red wine in their hands. Upon meeting a familiar friend, they greeted each other with a toast. Zachary and his wife looked toward the lovely couple. He whispered to her, ¡°Don¡¯t hide in a corner and eat like a glutton with Jasmine like you didst year.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°You two can be considered a long¨Cmarried couple, yet you¡¯re still lovey¨Cdovey in public spaces.¡± Josh initially wanted to clink sses with Zachary after walking over. However, after seeing that the married couple did not have a ss of wine in their hands like other people, he called a waiter and handed Zachary a ss of wine. Zachary turned and nced at Serenity. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Josh teased Serenity with a smile. ¡°Can our CEO drink tonight?¡± Serenity replied, ¡°Of course.¡± Why would they ask her that question? Zachary had many business engagements and often had to drink. It was okay as long as he did not get utterly drunk. Serenity did not remember herself controlling Zachary¡¯s alcohol intake. Josh clinked sses with Zachary with a grin. He said to Serenity, ¡°Looking at your expression just now, it seems like you¡¯ve been taking the me for our CEO many times. Whenever Zachary attended a business engagementtely, he would say that his wife didn¡¯t allow him to drink and that he would need to sleep in the study if he did.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Didn¡¯t I say that only once before?¡± She knew that Zachary had used her as an excuse once. Chapter 1334 Chapter 1334 Chapter 1334 It turned out that Zachary had been using Serenity as an excuse for some time. No wonder he smelt nice and fresh when he came home recently. Of course, Serenity did not want Zachary to drink so much alcohol. His stomach had been unwell before, and she had spent time nursing him back to health. It would be better if he avoided This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. drinking whenever he could. However, he deliberately created an image of him being bossed around by his wife¡­ Zachary held onto Serenity¡¯s waist. He scolded Josh with a smile and said to Jasmine, ¡°You shouldn¡¯t beughing happily, Ms. Sox. Josh uses you as an excuse too.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°I¡¯m okay with it. He can use me as an excuse as much as he wants to as long as he¡¯s healthy. You two are the same. Serenity and I have never been strict and given you guys enough freedom. You¡¯re the onesbeling yourselves as men who¡¯re afraid of their wives.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°They¡¯re not even scared of being ridiculed.¡± ¡°No one dares tough at me for being afraid of my wife in front of me anyway. They¡¯ll only praise me for spoiling my wife,¡± Zachary said boldly. When he was with outsiders, he always put on a straight face and tightened his lips. His eyes were dark, and people¡¯s hearts would feel cold just from his nce. Who would be so silly as tough at him for being afraid of his wife in front of him? Whenever someone mentioned Zachary, everyone would say he was a doting husband who loved Serenity wholeheartedly. ¡°Zachary and I are good friends. People will only say that we¡¯re birds of a feather that flock together.¡± Serenity and Jasmine were speechless. They truly were the same kind of person. ¡°You guys can continue chatting. Jasmine and I are going to greet Aunt Audrey.¡± Serenity pulled Jasmine and left after speaking. Zachary watched the two women from behind. He med Josh. ¡°Why did youe over and talk to me? See? My wife was snatched away by your fianc¨¦e. This is my wife¡¯s first time attending a banquet with me after we got married.¡± If it were not for Serenity, he would have left after greeting Old Mr. Marshall. She had to socialize and blend into his social circle. He wanted to be her escort. He would not let anyone bully or look down on her. However, based on her performance, she seemed like a natural. It was not that she could not blend in; it simply depended on whether she had the heart to do it willingly. ¡°Your wife was the one who pulled my fianc¨¦e away. I only managed to get a fianc¨¦e in my thirties. Your wife stole my fianc¨¦e before I even had the chance to be lovey¨Cdovey with her. Fortunately, Serenity is a woman, Zachary. If not, the fact that she has known Jasmine for more than ten years is enough to make me jealous of her.¡± Zachary chuckled. ¡°I was jealous for a long time back then.¡± He had been trying hard to upy the space in Serenity¡¯s heart too. After putting in effort for so long, he wondered whether his position in her heart had changed. Serenity¡¯s sister used to be her priority, followed by her nephew, best friends, then him. Zachary thought about it. He felt that he was tied for third ce with Jasmine at most. No, he was second. He would be in second ce if he had Sonny in his arms. He felt satisfied when he thought of it that way. He never thought of surpassing his sister¨Cinw¡¯s position in Serenity¡¯s heart. He would not fight for first ce with Liberty. Serenity had been raised single¨Chandedly by her sister. They have been relying on each other for many years. Her sister was like a mother figure to her. Josh said, ¡°I feel better now.¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go and talk to a few CEOS we know. By the way, why isn¡¯t Clive here?¡± Josh asked after taking a sip of wine. Chapter 1335 Chapter 1335 Chapter 1335 Zachary clinked sses with Josh, but he did not drink. He replied, ¡°Clive¡¯s wife is pregnant. You didn¡¯t just find out about this. If it were you, would you have brought your wife to such a venue tonight?¡± After a moment of silence, Josh said, ¡°I forgot about it. People of no importance are none of my concern. If my Jasmine were pregnant, I wouldn¡¯t even let her walk. I¡¯ll carry her around.¡± Zachary found it funny and said, ¡°Being pregnant isn¡¯t the same as falling sick. There¡¯s no need to be so nervous. Pregnant women have to have sufficient exercise too.¡± Josh pouted. ¡°You¡¯re talking now, but wait till your wife gets pregnant. If you can maintain the same opinion when that timees, I¡¯ll treat you to a meal.¡± ¡°You¡¯re talking as if I don¡¯t have food. I cook for Seren whenever I have time. My cooking skills have leveled up.¡± They chatted in low voices as they walked toward the crowd. Many people raised their sses in their direction as a form of greeting. Josh smiled and nodded. On the other hand, Zachary kept a tense expression and nodded slightly in reply to everyone. His gaze kept shifting to a specific area in Serenity¡¯s direction. As usual, Jim and the other bodyguards followed Zachary silently and blocked off young women who wanted to approach him while Missus was not around. Some still had not given up even though Mr. Zachary was already married. Maybe they discovered that Mr. Zachary was also a human with desires and that he would fall in love with a woman. Therefore, they wanted to beat Missus. Serenity did not know that her husband was paying attention to her actions. His eyes were filled with her. She walked toward Mrs. Stone and Elisa with Jasmine. Mrs. Stone was talking to other wives of wealthy families. Elisa stood beside her mother with a proper smile. She felt like her face was about to go stiff from smiling. When she saw her two friendsing over, she felt relief. Her mother could finally take her eyes Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. off her. Serenity and Jasmine greeted the otherdies first. ¡°Seren, you came at the right time. Hurry up and take Elisa away. I can¡¯t stand her annoyed look. My palm kept feeling itchy.¡± Mrs. Stone smiled and asked her niece to take her daughter away so her daughter would not look so annoyed. Mrs. Marshall said, ¡°Elisa is showing her true nature. I like this personality of hers. Too bad my son is already married. If not, we would¡¯ve been inws.¡± ¡°Jules, stop praising her. She can¡¯t be praised. She¡¯ll be full of herself.¡± Mrs. Lewis smiled too. ¡°Ms. Stone is a nicedy, after all.¡± She was on good terms with the York family and did not interact much with Mrs. Stone in the past. Additionally, she never targeted Elisa because the person Elisa liked was Zachary. Tania said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°Audrey, if you don¡¯t like Elisa, let her be my daughter. I¡¯m going crazy from wanting a daughter, but my wish never came true.¡± Elisa said smugly, ¡°Mom, look at how popr your daughter is.¡± Before her mother could reply, she quickly left thedies with her two friends. Those women were the most sophisticated wives in Wiltspoon¡¯s elite circle. They were of simr age. They were past the age of talking about jewelry and skincare. The topic they talked about most when they gathered was their children¡¯s marriages. Elisa was scared they would start introducing a boyfriend to her as their conversation progressed. Therefore, she made a quick escape. ¡°Serenity and Elisa are cousins, but they¡¯re closer than biological sisters.¡± Mrs. Marshall praised them. ¡°Jasmine too. I never thought she would be Mrs. Bucham¡¯s future daughter¨Cinw.¡± Mrs. Stone found Mrs. Bucham in the crowd. Mrs. Bucham happened to look over, and they exchanged a smile. Mrs. Stone said, ¡°Jasmine is a good child too. My niece has been friends for many years with her. She has proper values. I like that child.¡± Josh had been quick to snatch Jasmine up. Chapter 1336 Chapter 1336 Chapter 1336 Otherwise, even Mrs. Stone would have wanted to bring Jasmine and her son together. Josh would have thought, ¡®I was lucky that Zachary introduced me to Jasmine first.¡® Zachary deserved a reward for ying matchmaker. Elisa breathed a sigh of relief after getting away from the mothers. Sheined that Serenity and Jasmine rescued her toote.. ¡°You¡¯re exaggerating.¡± Serenity found it funny. She said, ¡°You even used the word ¡®rescue¡®.¡± ¡°Thedies seemed easy going though.¡± Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°Their gazes on you were so gentle.¡± Elisa shuddered. She said, ¡°They were looking at me as if I was their daughter¨Cinw.¡± That statement made Serenity and Jasmineugh. ¡°Seren, look.¡± Elisa suddenly nudged Serenity and stuck her lips out in a direction. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Serenity and Jasmine looked in the direction Elisa indicated. Jasmine saw Duncan was with an unfamiliar woman. Serenity did not find anything unusual because she had seen Duncan and Lily before. She knew Lily was the wife candidate Mrs. Lewis had picked out for Duncan. ¡°There¡¯s a woman beside Duncan.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Don¡¯t he and Liberty¡­¡± Serenity tugged her and whispered, ¡°Elisa, that¡¯s just our guess. It¡¯s not the truth. My sister and Mr. Lewis are just ordinary friends.¡± Mrs. Lewis did not like her sister. Her sister had no feelings for Duncan either. Serenity did not want people talking about her sister and Duncan. Elisa understood. She said, ¡°You¡¯re right. It¡¯s just our guess. Do you know that woman? I realized you weren¡¯t surprised at all.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve seen her once. She was eating breakfast with Mr. Lewis at my sister¡¯s store. We said hi to Content protected by N?v/el(D)rama.Org. each other.¡± ¡°I see.¡± Elisa hooked onto Serenity¡¯s arm. She said softly, ¡°I think Duncan isn¡¯t good enough for Liberty because of his scarred face. Mrs. Lewis looks down on her too. It¡¯s better if nothing is going on. between them. With my mom here, Liberty can definitely get married to a better man if she intends to remarry.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°If my sister wishes to get married, I¡¯ll keep an eye out too.¡± She used to rely on her sister in the past. Now that she had Zachary and higher status, she wanted to be someone her sister could depend on. ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll introduce you two to my best friend. Her cousin works in education and has established a few private schools. The amount of vegetables students and teachers require each day is huge. Let¡¯s see if we can be in charge of those private schools¡® vegetable supply.¡± The main reason Elisa willingly apanied her parents to the banquet was to discuss business Although they had yet to grow crops, the farms were already underway. They would be able to nt fruits and vegetables there soon. A business deal could not be decided in mere moments either. After all, the other party alread had a fixed supplier. They were the ones who were showing up out of the blue. However, it woul not hurt to get to know some people. ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity and Jasmine wanted to get to know Elisa¡¯s best friend too. They followed Elisa. Chapter 1337 Chapter 1337 Chapter 1337 ¡°Mrs. York.¡± They were stopped by Mrs. Newman and Camryn just after taking several steps. Camryn was being dragged by Mrs. Newman. When Serenity saw Camryn was about to fall, she instinctively stretched her hand to support her. ¡°Be careful, Camryn.¡± Serenity steadied Camryn before looking toward Mrs. Newman. Mrs. Newman squeezed a smile. ¡°Thank you for helping Camryn, Mrs. York. She can¡¯t see, so she falls easily.¡± Elisa said, ¡°She¡¯s blind, yet you keep dragging her.¡± Mrs. Newman¡¯s smile faltered. ¡°I guess the sun will rise from the west tomorrow,¡± Elisa said sarcastically. She gave Mrs. Newman a sidelong nce. ¡°This is your first time bringing Camryn to a banquet, Mrs. Newman. How rare. Do you guys think the sun will rise from the west tomorrow?¡± Elisa¡¯s mockery infuriated Mrs. Newman, but she did not let it show on her face. She maintained her smile and said, ¡°Camryn is blind, and I can¡¯t always be by her side even if I brought her to banquets. I was afraid of her getting into an ident in the past. Moreover, Camryn dislikes these events too, so I didn¡¯t bring her along. ¡°However, Camryn is no longer young. It¡¯s time for her to socialize and meet people.¡± Everyone could sense the meaning behind Mrs. Newman¡¯s words. It was time to sacrifice the child she had raised for so long. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. They nced at Camryn, who always had a calm expression. She looked pretty after getting all dressed up. If she were not blind, she would have bested Carrie by andslide. Elisa was aware of the people¡¯s behavior in that social circle, so she felt it would be difficult for Camryn to marry into a good family. It was not just because Camryn was blind but also her mother, Mrs. Newman. Who would want to be inws with Mrs. Newman? Her partiality could make someone die from anger. How did Old Mrs York choose Camryn for Callum? Elisa asked Serenity about it as she was curious. Serenity did not know the answer. Even Jasmine, who had firsthand gossip, did not know the reason. ¡°What business do you have, Mrs. Newman?¡± Serenity did not want to continue wasting time on Mrs. Newman. She asked her directly. Mrs. Newman looked toward Elisa and Jasmine. ¡°Jasmine, let¡¯s go and get some food.¡± Elisa read the room and left with Jasmine. Mrs. Newman smiled and said to Serenity, ¡°Mrs. York, let¡¯s take a seat and have a slow chat, shall we? ¡°You¡¯re considered friends with Camryn anyway.¡± Mrs. Newman used Camryn as an excuse. Serenity nced at Camryn and said indifferently, ¡°Let¡¯s sit down there and talk.¡± Mrs. Newman gestured for her to walk first. When Serenity guided Camryn, Camryn poked her palm. Serenity understood and whispered, ¡°I¡¯m aware of the situation. ¡°Why did she bring you here?¡± Chapter 1338 Chapter 1338 Chapter 1338 Serenity asked Camryn softly, ¡°Is she trying to arrange a marriage for you and some rich man¡¯s son?¡± After pressing her lips together, Camryn replied softly, ¡°She won¡¯t let me get married to a rich man. She¡¯ll only give me to someone else. She can give me to anyone who¡¯ll benefit her.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Serenity was furious upon hearing that. Sensing her anger, Camryn smiled unexpectedly. She said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I can protect myself.¡± She had a small de with her wherever she went. Serenity still wanted to say something, but Camryn poked her palm again. Therefore, she did not say anything else. Mrs. Newman chose a quiet and rtively remote spot. She gestured to Serenity to sit. ¡°Do you want anything to eat, Mrs. York? I¡¯ll take some food for you.¡± ¡°No, thank you. You can talk about what you want, Mrs. Newman.¡± Mrs. Newmanughed sheepishly. She said, ¡°Mrs. York, you and Camryn clicked right away and are friends. Carrie is Camryn¡¯s biological sister. Can you not sue Carrie for Camryn¡¯s sake, Mrs. York? ¡°I know Carrie made a mistake. She knows what she did wrong now. She¡¯s still young and immature, but don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll educate her well in the future. I won¡¯t let her offend you again. ¡°Since Carrie smashed your car, we¡¯re willing topensate you with two of the same car. If you have any other requests, just let us know. I¡¯ll satisfy anything as long as it¡¯s within my capabilities. Mrs. York, we¡¯re in the same social circle. We see each other so frequently. It¡¯ll look bad if things be awkward. ¡°Don¡¯t you think so, Mrs. York? Anyone can make mistakes, and it¡¯s better to forgive whenever possible.¡± Mrs. Newman secretly pinched Camryn. Camryn found it painful. ¡°What did you do to Camryn, Mrs. Newman?¡± Serenity saw Camryn grimacing with pain. Her expression darkened. She asked Camryn out of concern, ¡°What did she do to you, Camryn?¡± ¡°Mrs. York, Camryn is my daughter. What can I possibly do to her? She might¡¯ve eaten something bad and her stomach¡¯s feeling sick.¡± If it were not for her beloved daughter, Mrs. Newman would have refused to talk to a country bumpkin. She hated Camryn more for being scheming and evil. Camryn deliberately made a painful expression in front of Serenity. Was Camryn not letting Serenity know that she, as a mother, was treating her daughter poorly? ¡°Mom, I never even drank a ss of water sinceing here. How could I have an upset stomach? It¡¯s my thigh that hurts, not my stomach.¡± Camryn¡¯s voice was soft, but it made Mrs. Newman want to strangle her to death. She was angry and did not give Camryn a chance to speak. She said to Serenity, ¡°Mrs. York, your misunderstanding with Carrie arose because of Camryn. Camryn and Carrie are sisters. Their grudges neverst overnight, and they¡¯ve reconciled. It¡¯s not good for you, an outsider, to keep holding on to this matter, right? ¡°We¡¯re willing topensate you. We¡¯ve also apologized countless times. We still have to meet each other in the future, so I¡¯ll advise you to be more magnanimous. Don¡¯t be so petty. Your journey will be difficult if you offend too many people.¡± Mrs. Newman addressed Serenity as Mrs. York, but it was evident through her words that she did not respect Serenity at all. Her disdain for Serenity was bone¨Cdeep. Even if Serenity married into the York family, she was still a country bumpkin to Mrs. Newman. If it were not for Zachary supporting Serenity, Mrs. Newman would have had a way to get her daughter out even if Serenity sued Carrie. ¡°Carrie hired someone to harm me. Am I narrow¨Cminded for not forgiving her? Mrs. Newman, I disagree with your thoughts and words.¡± ¡°Were you hurt? You didn¡¯t even lose a hair, but my daughter went to prison!¡± Serenity sneered. ¡°That¡¯s because I¡¯m skilled in self¨Cdefense. What your daughter did was against the law. She spent money to hire someone to hurt me and smash my car. That¡¯s a crime. I wasn¡¯t injured, but does that mean her actions can be erased? ¡°I won¡¯t use your daughter wrongly, but I won¡¯t condone her behavior either. She has to ept the punishment thates along with what she has done. This is a problem between your daughter and me. It has nothing to do with Camryn. Mrs. Newman¡¯s expression turned cold. ¡°Serenity Hunt, are you insisting on having my daughter sentenced?¡± Chapter 1339 Chapter 1339 Chapter 1339 Serenity said seriously, ¡°Mrs. Newman, I¡¯m not insisting on having your daughter sentenced. Your daughtermitted a crime. Whether or not she¡¯ll be convicted, I don¡¯t want myself to get hurt anymore. You should know your daughter well. You said she knows her mistake and guarantees not to hire someone to hurt me again. ¡°You might believe her, but I don¡¯t.¡± Mrs. Newman red at Serenity with a dark expression. Her husband kept telling her to build a good rtionship with Serenity and plead for mercy for their daughter. Did he think she did not want to build a good rtionship with that country bumpkin? Did she not apologize, offerpensation, and plead for mercy for their daughter? She even asked Camryn to look for Serenity. However, Serenity was stubborn. She was determined to sue Carrie. Hatred boiled in Mrs. Newman¡¯s heart. Since Serenity would not make things easier for them, she would not let Serenity live a peaceful life either. Mrs. Newman stood up and said with a cold expression, ¡°Excuse me, Mrs. York.¡± After that, she extended her hand to pull Camryn. She did not want her to be with Serenity. If it were not for her elder daughter, Carrie would not have harbored a grudge toward Serenity. ¡°Let¡¯s go, Camryn.¡± Just as Mrs. Newman stretched her hand to pull Camryn, Camryn flung her hand away. She said calmly, ¡°I¡¯m blind, so I can¡¯t apany you to socialize with your circle of madames. I¡¯ll sit here and return home after the banquet ends.¡± Mrs. Newman said coldly, ¡°Don¡¯t even think of going home if you don¡¯t apany me. ¡°I¡¯m asking you again, Camryn. Are youing?¡± Camryn sat still. Mrs. Newman sneered and red at Serenity. She said with a cold smile, ¡°It seems like you¡¯re all grown up now, Camryn.¡± After viciously ring at her elder daughter, Mrs. Newman turned and walked away arrogantly. After she left, Serenity asked concernedly, ¡°Camryn, will she really not allow you to go back home?¡± ¡°What¡¯s the difference between whether I return to that home or not? I¡¯m just a transparent person there anyway.¡± Camrynughed self¨Cdeprecatingly. When her expression turned calm again, she said to Serenity gently, ¡°Mrs. York¡­¡± ¡°I told you to call me Serenity.¡± ¡°Serenity, you should go and be with your friends. I¡¯ll just sit here and listen to the fun.¡± Serenity said worriedly, ¡°I¡¯ll bring you to have fun with Jasmine and the rest.¡± Mrs. Newman clearly had bad intentions that night. Serenity was worried Mrs. Newman would set Camryn up. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I¡¯m blind and don¡¯t know them well enough to have a conversation. You guys won¡¯t be able to talk happily if I join in too. Serenity, this is Wiltspoon Hotel and Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s banquet. There are many guests. The top wealthy misters and their wives are all present. The young masters of the York family are here too. No one will dare do harm here.¡± Her mother would ask someone to have a look at her at most. After finding a match, her mother would give her to someone else when leaving the hotel. Serenity thought Camryn¡¯s words made sense. Therefore, she gave a few reminders. ¡°Shout out loud if something happens. Do you want to eat anything? I¡¯ll get some food and drinks for you.¡± Camryn smiled and thanked her. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Serenity got up to take food and beverage back for Camryn. She ced them in front of Camryn and told her what she had taken. ¡°Thank you, Serenity. You became enemies with them because of me. It was lucky that you were okay. If something had happened to you, I¡¯d feel guilty for the rest of my life.¡± Aside from Camryn¡¯s aunt and housekeeper, Serenity was the first to help her and treat her unconditionally and sincerely. ¡°Carrie has to be taught a lesson. Your mom spoiled her rotten. She said you and Carrie are sisters, but did Carrie treat you as one when she tried to drug you and set you up? There¡¯ll be dire consequences if ordinary people get set up without anyone to help us, let alone you.¡± Chapter 1340 Chapter 1340 Chapter 1340 Serenity used to see scenes of people being drugged and set up in novels or TV shows. She did not think that that would actually happen in real life. Moreover, it was a younger sister drugging her elder sister to ruin her life. After a moment of silence, Camryn said, ¡°It¡¯s not once or twice that she drugged me.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°They¡¯re treating you so poorly. You can move out.¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. The risk of living together with them was too huge. Camryn was silent again before saying angrily, ¡°My father left me that house. Why do I have to move out? The people who are supposed to move out are them! They used to bully me for being a kid, and now they¡¯re bullying me for being blind.¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes gleamed. That was a lot of information. Zachary analyzed the situation for her before. Camryn¡¯s biological father might have been killed. Camryn almost died from being gravely ill when she was sixteen years old, but no one in the Newman family sent her to the hospital. It was obvious that they wanted to let her die. Did Camryn¡¯s father discover something before he died, which had him make a will and leave many assets to Camryn? Did those people murder for money? Or did Camryn know the actual cause of her father¡¯s death? They were probably afraid Camryn would seek to avenge her father, so they wanted her to die. Camryn was lucky. She happened to be discovered by her aunt, who had married to a ce far away and was back to visit her family. Her aunt sent her to the hospital, and she was saved. However, she lost her sight. Maybe Camryn had been able to live up till now because of her blindness. She could not see anything or do much. Did those people spare her life because of that? Serenity thought Camryn was a mystery drama with many questionable points that she could not solve. That made her itch to know the answer. Serenity held Camryn¡¯s hand. Sheforted her. ¡°Camryn, if you know something and have. always been hiding it, you should keep it that way for now. The most important thing is to stay alive. Also, treat your eyes first.¡± Camryn felt warmth in her heart. She held Serenity¡¯s hands back and said softly, ¡°I will. I¡¯ve always been holding it in.¡± She was unable to look for evidence because she turned blind. She had no choice but to restrain herself. Serenity patted Camryn¡¯s hands. ¡°I¡¯m okay. You can go ahead, Serenity.¡± Camryn¡¯s emotions calmed very quickly as if the expression of hatred had not appeared on her face at all. She always seemed so calm. It felt like everything was in her grasp. Actually, she was simply hurt too deeply and numb. She no longer had expectations, and her heart was dead inside. Therefore, she looked like she did not care about anything. Serenity saw Callum walking over with a ss of red wine. After withdrawing her hand, she said to Camryn, ¡°I¡¯ll leave now. Just call out if anything happens.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity stood up and walked away. When she reached Callum, she said to her brother¨Cinw softly, ¡°Take care of Camryn. Send her home after the banquet ends. ¡°Did you drink?¡± ¡°No.¡± The ss of wine in Callum¡¯s hand was just for show. After all, everyone had a ss in their hand. No one would know if he had drunk the wine or not. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t drink then. I¡¯ll be more at ease if you send her back personally.¡± ¡°Thank you for being concerned for my wife, Serenity.¡± Serenity chuckled. ¡°You¡¯re calling her your wife already. You should consider whether you¡¯ve fulfilled the responsibility of being a husband.¡± Chapter 1341 Chapter 1341 Chapter 1341 Callum said cheekily, ¡°It¡¯s only a matter of time before she bes my wife. I¡¯m just doing this to practice for when it happens eventually. I wouldn¡¯t want to end up like my brother who had trouble doing so.¡± Serenity chuckled, ¡°That¡¯s a strange lesson you took from brother.¡± your ¡°Using my brother¡¯s many mistakes as a guide allows me to avoid many pitfalls in my rtionship.¡± Serenity was speechless. When was the first time Zachary addressed her as his wife? She barely remembered. Perhaps it was not a very significant experience for her, which exined why it did not leave an impression. If it was something impactful, she would have remembered. Fortunately, Zachary would never find out that this was her impression. Else, he would have countless sleepless nights thinking about it. Serenity walked away. She was going to see her business partner. Elisa took Jasmine with her to introduce Jasmine to her best friend Tasha. Tasha¡¯s cousin was joining them as well. When Elisa noticed Serenity approaching, she took Serenity¡¯s arm and turned to Tasha, ¡°Tasha, this is my cousin Serenity, the one who imed Zachary for herself.¡± Though Elisa could noty her im on Zachary, she felt a sense of pride for her cousin who bagged the man. Tasha greeted her with a warm smile, ¡°Mrs. York, your reputation precedes you. I feel like I am ended meeting a mythical character. It¡¯s no surprise to me that someone as beautiful as you up This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. with Zachary.¡± Serenity smiled. ¡°You tter me, I¡¯m not as beautiful as you say I am. Besides, it¡¯s not so much my charms that won Zachary over. We just happened to attract each other; call it fate if you will.¡± Everyone shared a heartyugh. With Elisa leading the way, Serenity and Jasmine were introduced to many wealthydies. They formed a lot of connections as well. It opened up many potential business ventures going forward. Although Zachary was never the overprotective type and was fine with letting Serenity roam free, he had always been paying attention to her every move. Josh was with him at the moment. He noticed the way he looked at Serenity and remarked candidly, ¡°This is the perfect sort of environment for the missus. Look out how bold she is no matter who she¡¯s talking to. She knows who she is and she is perfectlyfortable with her status.¡± Zachary looked at Serenity with a tender glow in his eyes. ¡°She hasn¡¯t always been this confident woman you¡¯re seeing today.¡± Josh smiled and asked, ¡°Zachary, when you first married her, did you ever foresee a day like this?¡± Zachary answered with another question, ¡°Did you ever think that you would fall in love with Jasmine?¡± ¡°No, I did not.¡± ¡°There¡¯s your answer, I could never force any of this.¡± Joshughed. ¡°In a few days, I will be getting engaged with Jasmine.¡± ¡°Congrattions!¡± ¡°The wedding will be before May,¡± Josh replied. Zachary congratted him once again. Suddenly, Josh asked with a candid smile, ¡°As my boss and good friend, do you have anything to say to me?¡± ¡°Well, I¡¯ll send you my bank details shortly.¡± Josh was puzzled by this and asked, ¡°Shouldn¡¯t I be the one who gives you my bank details instead? Don¡¯t worry, seeing as we are good friends, I wouldn¡¯t want to give you too much pressure. I won¡¯t expect you to break the bank for my wedding gift.¡± Zachary lowered his voice to a deep grumble, ¡°Who was the one who introduced you two to each other?¡± Chapter 1342 Chapter 1342 Chapter 1342 ¡°You! Certainly.¡± ¡°Doesn¡¯t that make me the matchmaker?¡± Josh thought about it and answered, ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°I¡¯m giving you my bank details so you can send me a little token of appreciation for matching you two together. Come on, I¡¯m not going to give you money as a wedding gift, I have better things in mind than something as impersonal as money. However, for my part, I would like some money because I am shallow. Consider it a thank¨Cyou gesture for my role as the matchmaker.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Josh was struck speechless. Serenity had transformed Zachary into a man who kept checks and bnces even when it came to his interpersonal rtionships. This banquet continued well into midnight. In the past, Zachary would only show up for ten to fifteen minutes at most, just as a formality. After that, he would immediately excuse himself. Tonight was an exception. He waited until the banquet was over before leaving with his beloved wife. His actions were a testament to the love and affection he had for his wife. This also served as a public affirmation of Serenity¡¯s position in the family. The rumors that she was not getting along with her mother¨Cinw were proven false, and the tales people spun about her having a tense rtionship with the family werepletely inurate. The Yorks elders doted on her like they were her daughter, and the other members of the family respected her as much as they did Zachary. The set of jewelry she wore tonight toplement her outfit was a gift from her mother¨Cinw. Anyone with an eye for jewelry could tell that it was an exotic piece that was worth hundreds of millions¨Cwhy would Tania even splurge so much on her daughter¨Cinw if she did not like her? After tonight, the rumors circting Wiltspoon about Serenity¡¯s tense rtionship with her husband¡¯s family werepletely debunked. Serenity, the one who was at the center of these rumors could hardly be bothered about such talks. It had hardly crossed her mind at all for as far as she was concerned, she was just attending an ordinary banquet with her dear husband. After Zachary took her into the car, she tilted her body sideways to lean against Zachary and began mumbling, ¡°I¡¯m not drunk¡­¡± Zachary yfully pinched the tip of her well¨Cshaped nose and told her, ¡°Look at you, you¡¯re drinking like you arepletely immune to alcohol. If your sister finds out, she¡¯s going to lecture me about not keeping an eye on you again.¡± Liberty had once told him to keep an eye on Serenity when she was drinking. She mentioned that Serenity liked drinking but could never hold her alcohol; even a bottle of beer was enough to knock her out. She did manage to get some practice with Mrs. Stone and improved her alcohol tolerance slightly, but it ended up bolstering her confidence disproportionately. When she was chatting with people about potential future business deals, she ended up getting too much ahead of herself and drank. two more sses than she should have. It was only a short ten¨Cminute period when Zachary just happened to have his attention somewhere else. ¡°Good wine, good wine¡­¡± Serenity was still conscious enough to yfully p Zachary¡¯s hand away. She began mumbling incoherently about the wine she drank. Zachary chuckled and said, ¡°Well, the wine was pretty good, but I don¡¯t think you could handle all that.¡± He did not even take a sip of alcohol tonight, regardless of who came to give him a toast. He would tell them that his wife did not like it when he drinks and that he did not want to reek of alcohol. Everyone was very understanding and did not pressure him into drinking. They evenplimented his devotion to his wife. What they did not say out loud was that they thought his wife was too controlling and that he was a ve. Zachary did not care what people had to say about him. He made a point of not getting drunk because he knew that his duty was to take care of his now- drunk wife. Serenity could barely process Zachary¡¯s lecture. She heard nothing but loose strings of words in her head. She weakly pried her eyes open and took in the sight of the handsome face of her man before mumbling, ¡°Zachary, my head is spinning, I¡¯m going to fall asleep.¡± She raised her hand and brushed her fingers against Zachary¡¯s face. She then put her hand on Zachary¡¯s chest, burying her weight into him before shutting her eyes. She babbled incoherently before drifting off to sleep, ¡°I¡¯m going to sleep, I¡¯m going to bed¡­¡± ¡°Remember to invite me if there¡¯s good wine next time.¡± Zachary teased her, ¡°Did you forget that we have a collection of wine at home?¡± Serenity was still muttering about something but Zachary could barely hear her at this point. If he had to guess, she was probablyining about him not letting her drink as much as she wanted. Just as Liberty said, Serenity was fond of drinking despite her poor alcohol tolerance. If Zachary let her roam free in his wine cer, chances were that she was going to get alcohol poisoning in no time. ¡°I just need the vegetables to grow well, finding customers won¡¯t be a problem¡­¡± Serenity said suddenly when Zachary thought she had fallen asleep. She uttered this with a bright smile, looking as beautiful as ever With that, she stretchedzily in Zachary¡¯s arms and wrapped her arms as tightly as she could around him. Her eyes were shut the entire time and there was no way to tell if she was just talking in her sleep, but she did giggle as she confessed, ¡°Zachary, it¡¯s wonderful being your wife¡­ So wonderful!¡± Chapter 1343 Chapter 1343 Chapter 1343 Zachary smiled lovingly and embraced her tightly. He felt like the luckiest man in the world to get to call himself her husband. It did not take long before Serenity fell asleep. After ensuring that she was asleep, Zachary took off his suit jacket and threw it over her, careful to not wake her up. ¡°Take us back to the hilltop vi,¡± Zachary instructed the driver in a low voice. The driver nodded dutifully. With that, Zachary leaned against the backseat of the car with his beloved wife in his arms. He closed his eyes and got some rest. By the time they arrived at the vi, he had fallen asleep as well. The driver stopped the car, then he turned around and peeked at Zachary and Serenity who were both sleeping soundly in the backseat. He turned to Jim in the passenger seat and asked, ¡°Jim, should we wake Mr. Zachary and Missus up?¡± Jim immediately remarked, ¡°Of course. Are you going to just let them sleep in the car for the night? If you do that, you¡¯ll be out of a job when they wake up tomorrow.¡± The driver chuckled and beckoned, ¡°Alright, Jim, why don¡¯t you wake them up.¡± ¡°You¡¯re the driver, I am just a bodyguard.¡± ¡°Mr. Zachary likes you more and gets on pretty well with you. And the missus is friendlier with you in general as well, isn¡¯t she? I think it¡¯s better that you wake them up. They probably won¡¯t mind. They might get upset if I interrupt their sleep.¡± Jim retorted, ¡°Mr. Zachary only feels that way about me because I¡¯ve always been very attentive and do the things he tells me to do. I had to keep up this image for a long time before I finally earned the missus¡¯s trust.¡± He had made a point of earning the missus¡¯s trust for quite a while now. Back then, it was Old Mr. and Old Mrs. York who ran things around the house. Things had changed since the missus showed up and he knew that if he was looking for a raise or a promotion, he had to make sure to earn the missus¡¯s trust no matter what. The Yorks had employed countless bodyguards, but the only bodyguard who the missus remembered by name was Jim. He considered it a medal for his efforts. ¡°Jim¡­¡± ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll wake them up.¡± Jim stopped bickering with the driver and proceeded to wake them in a bright voice, ¡°Sir, we¡¯ve arrived.¡± Zachary barely budged. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Jim tried to wake hirn again. Zachary seemed to be awake atst. The driver suddenly chimed in, ¡°Sir, we¡¯re home.¡± Jim threw a nce at him, the driver shed a coy smile back at him. Jim made no furtherments, he understood that everyone was just looking out for what was best for themselves at the end of the day. After Zachary woke up, Jim and the driver got out of the car and opened the door for him. Zachary did not attempt to wake Serenity. Besides, he doubted she would wake up since she was completely out cold. She tended to fall into an eternal slumber whenever she drank and would not wake up even if there was a raging thunderstorm outside. He got out of the car with Serenity in his arms. Sam the butler came out of the house and greeted him. ¡°Wee back, sir.¡± ¡°Keep your voice down, she¡¯s asleep,¡± Sam immediately zipped his lips upon hearing this before following Zachary into the house. After entering the house, Zachary headed for the bedroom upstairs immediately with Serenity still sleeping in his arms. Sam waited until Zachary had gone up the stairway and gone out of sight before he turned around and headed outside. He called over Jim who was just about to take a break and made sure to keep his voice down, ¡°Did anything happen to them at the banquet tonight?¡± ¡°Nothing unusual.¡± ¡°They did not get into a fight or anything like that, did they?¡± Jim pointed out bluntly, ¡°Sam, you¡¯re not secretly hoping that they would get into a fight, right?¡± ¡°You brat, I just wanted rification in case I say something I¡¯m not supposed to say tomorrow.¡± ¡°No, they would never get into a fight. Have you seen how much Mr. Zachary pampers the missus?¡± Sam was relieved to hear this and told him, ¡°This morning, the missus woke up earlier than usual to see her sister. Mrs. Lane told me that when Mr. Zachary woke up to find the missus missing, he was rather upset.¡± Mr. Zachary was a very loving husband toward the missus, but he could be overbearing at times. Chapter 1344 Chapter 1344 Chapter 1344 With an air of nonchnce as if the matter did not concern him at all, Jim remarked, ¡°It¡¯ll be fine. The missus can always keep Mr. Zachary in check no matter what. No matter how he tries tosh out, he inevitably loses to the missus once she tries to reason with him. It¡¯s the same thing every time.¡± Sam shot a look at him. Jim grinned pompously. ¡°It¡¯s true, you know it is! Sam, don¡¯t worry about it, as long as the missus is here, she¡¯ll keep everything in control no matter what happens. We don¡¯t need to do anything. even if Mr. Zachary gets upset. Just wait for the missus to step in and handle the situation.¡± They knew that no matter how upset Mr. Zachary got, he would never try to hurt the missus. ¡°Sam, it¡¯s gettingte, why don¡¯t you get some rest? I need to get some shuteye too,¡± Jim said with an exaggerated yawn before excusing himself and walking away. Sam was reying what Jim had told him in his mind. Soon, he concluded that this was why the brat had always made a point of getting on the missus¡¯s good side. It was because he knew who was truly in control. Jim was very aware of this as well. He understood this was why he was paid better than the others. Meanwhile, at Wiltspoon Hotel, the three members of the Newman family were thest group to leave the hotel. Partly because Camryn was taking her time. Seeing that there was hardly anyone else left at the venue at this hour, Mrs. Newman decided that there was no need to keep up appearances anymore. She ditched Camryn and walked out of the hotel by herself. Camryn did not have her cane with her. She stumbled around aimlessly and ended up walking back into the hotel instead. After walking a short distance, she came to a stop. ¡°Mr. Callumn?¡± Callum was intrigued by Camryn calling his name, ¡°How could you tell that it was me?¡± ¡°I caught a whiff of your scent. It¡¯s very distinctive.¡± Callum smiled. ¡°Why did youe back? Did you forget something? Let me help you look for it.¡± Camryn blushed slightly upon hearing this. Before they headed out tonight, Mrs. Newman had forbidden her from taking her sunsses. Without her sunsses shielding her, she felt very vulnerable and her expression gave her away easily. ¡°I¨CI think I¡¯m a little lost, I was going to head out. ¡°Mr. Callum, could you show me the way out of here?¡± Callum nced in the direction of the lobby. He considered for a moment and proceeded to take Camryn¡¯s hand without a word.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Camryn instinctively recoiled when she felt his touch. She drew two steps backward and stammered, ¡°Just show me the way out, I can walk myself.¡± ¡°I¡¯m worried you¡¯ll bump into something if I let you go by yourself.¡± He gave her a reassuring look, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m not going to do anything to you.¡± ¡°I know, I know you¡¯re not that kind of person. Still, please just tell me which way to the lobby, I¡¯ll be careful on my way out. I promise I won¡¯t bump into anything.¡± Callum hesitated. He swiftly took off his tie and handed one end of the fabric to Camryn while instructing her, ¡°Hold on to this and follow me.¡± Camryn clenched tightly onto the piece of fabric. It gave her a sense of security and washed away her agitation in an instant. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± He thought that they should get a guide dog for her. He wondered if the proposition itself would offend her. Besides, they were not very acquainted with each other. With Callum leading in front, Camryn finally managed to exit the hotel. The Newman couple were already gone at this point. They tasked one of their bodyguards to wait for Camryn. ¡°Ms. Newman.¡± The bodyguard promptly greeted Camryn when he noticed her, ¡°Ms. Newman, your parents had instructed me to take you home.¡± Then, he turned to Callum and thanked him politely, ¡°Thank you for walking Ms. Newman out, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°No need, it wasn¡¯t much trouble at all.¡± Callum was relieved to see that the Newmans at least had left a bodyguard to escort Camryn back home. He helped Camryn into the car shortly after that. After the car drove away, he suddenly recalled that his sister¨Cinw had specifically instructed him to avoid drinking tonight. She had also tasked him with sending Camryn home after the banquet. He considered for a moment and promptly went to get his car. Since he had arrived at the venue earlier than the others, his car was parked right at the parking lot in front only a short distance away. Chapter 1345 Chapter 1345 Chapter 1345 This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Callum followed the Newmans¡® car from a safe distance. Initially, there was nothing that would rouse his suspicion. After tailing them for about ten minutes, he noticed that they were going in a different direction and were not heading toward the Newmans¡® ce. Callum was rmed by this. Where was the Newmans¡® bodyguard taking Camryn? His expression gradually darkened, but he knew that this was not the time to act on impulse yet. He continued tailing the car from an appropriate distance. He would have to wait until they had arrived at their destination before he could figure out what was happening. Camryn waspletely clueless to the fact that Callum was tailing her, even the bodyguard driving did not notice as well. She sat quietly inside the car and listened to the rumble of the car¡¯s engine and the friction of tires against the asphalt. From time to time, she could hear the sounds of other vehicles passing by; the gentle whoosh produced when two vehicles glided past each other. She assumed that they were now about to arrive at the vi. She was aware that the road leading back to the vi was on the outskirts of the city and tended to have less trafficpared to the main roads. There was less traffic on the road, especially at night. She leaned against the backseat. She soon felt a wave of drowsiness creeping up on her but she forced herself to stay awake. She was afraid of falling asleep in unfamiliar environments such as this. She was worried the bodyguard would boot her out of the car at some point. After what seemed like forever, the car finally screeched to a stop. After the bodyguard stopped the car, he opened the door and stepped out of the car. Camryn could hear the gentle thud of the door closing. She began to fumble for the door handle as well and proceeded to open the door to step out of the car. As soon as she opened the door, she felt the presence of a stranger approaching her. She listened to the crunch of boots against the ground. There was an unfamiliar voice and the texture of the stride was entirely foreign. In time, she smelled a strong scent of cigarettes emanating from the stranger. ¡°Who is this?¡± she asked cautiously. The stranger did not answer. She could only feel a presence in front of her and the intensity of someone¡¯s gaze on her. She began to feel a sense of unease, and the hair on her skin was standing on its end. Her first instinct was to back away and burrow herself into the car. Unfortunately, she was one step too late for the stranger had ced a foot against the door to prevent her from shutting it. Immediately after, the stranger entered the car. She crawled to the other side of the backseat and tried to escape. She felt the tight grip of the stranger on her arm. It felt like a man¡¯s grip. She could not get away from the man¡¯s clutches. ¡°Who are you?¡± Camryn cried out sharply. She shoved the man away and managed to jerk her arms free from the stranger¡¯s clutches. Despite being shoved away forcefully, the man did not seem upset at all. He did not attempt to force himself on Camryn again and instead lighted himself a cigarette. He proceeded to observe the girl. Keeping her movements as subtle as possible, Camryn unbuckled her high heels. She took it off in one swift movement and immediately used it as a weapon and swung it viciously at the strange man. She swung it as hard and as wildly as she could. Even when she missed, she continued swinging ruthlessly. She was quite strong for someone with her petite frame. The man did not make a sound the entire time. He was aware that the girl was blind, so as long as he did not make a sound, she had no way of figuring out his identity. She was an exotic beauty that the Newmans had given to him on a silver tter to y with however he liked. As long as he could help the Newmans get their other beloved daughter out of her predicament, he got to keep the blind girl as long as he liked as his personal ything. He had his fill with plenty of women in his time, but he had never experienced something as exotic as a beautiful and blind girl. It was rather exciting. He did not even bother to lock the doors because he did not expect any form of resistance from a blind girl. Besides, it did not seem like Camryn could conceal any sort of weapon on her since she was wearing a simple dress with an exposed back. He had not expected her to resort to using her high heels as a weapon. The pointy end of the heels she wore was a rather formidable weapon. Each blow that connected hurt a great deal. Chapter 1346 Chapter 1346 Chapter 1346 He took a brutal beatdown from Camryn and ended up having to scramble out of the car to get away from her. Camryn quickly hobbled out of the car as well. It would be entirely unreasonable for her to continue attacking the man since she could not see. After she got out of the car, she took off the other shoe and immediately ran off. She had no idea where she was supposed to run toward at all. She had only managed several steps before she was apprehended by the man who reeked of cigarettes. He jerked her backward forcefully and mmed her into the car. Before she could regain her bnce, the man pinned her against the car. She began swinging at the man haphazardly with her high heels to no avail since it was quickly snatched out of her hands. Left without a weapon, she resorted to jabbing her knee upward as hard as she could. ¡°Ugh!¡± The man let out a muffled grunt. Suddenly, Camryn felt his weight lifted off her body. She must have kneed the man right in the groin. She took advantage of the opening and rolled sideways to wring herself free from the man. Then, she picked herself off the ground and began running again. The nasty man who reeked of cigarettes was still doubling over. It was going to take him a while to recover from being kicked right in the groin. They were in the middle of nowhere with not a soul in sight. This was by design since he had arranged to have Camryn brought here where there was nobody around. The Newmans¡® bodyguard who was responsible for transporting Camryn to the appointed destination had left without a word after he dropped her off. Everything had gone just as the man had nned. He was worried that the Newmans would take video evidence of his vileness and use it to ckmail him to work for them. This was why he requested the bodyguard to leave immediately after dropping off Camryn. A few minutes passed, and he finally rose to his feet. Camryn had already run off more than a hundred meters by now but she was not out of the woods yet. Due to her blindness and the fact that she was in apletely unfamiliar ce, she had a lot of trouble wading through her surroundings and would bump into tree trunks asionally. She assumed that she was in the middle of a park. The dangerous man began chasing after her. Being the degenerate that he was, the blind girl¡¯s constant resistance had only excited him further. He knew she could not get away from him even if she had a ten¨Cminute head start. Besides, she had gone in the wrong direction from the very beginning. She was now running further downhill into the woods, into apletely uninhabited area. There was a gazebo nearby. He told himself that after he caught her, he would bring her to this. gazebo and do it right here¡­ He smiled devilishly and relished at the idea. His groin was still stinging with pain after she kicked him. No matter, he would show her who was boss¡­ Suddenly, he heard the sound of a roaring engine. He jerked his head toward the direction he heard the sounding from and immediately spotted a car heading toward him at breakneck speed. Who could this be? Nobody was supposed to be here! He was upset at having been interrupted by an outsider but immediatelyposed himself. He promptly dove into a thicket of bushes nearby and used it as camouge, then he began running back to where he came from. It was Callum who arrived at the scene. He had seen the degenerate trying to take advantage of Camryn inside the car and was furious. He wanted to press down on the gas pedal as hard as he could and run over the perverted scum. Upon noticing the degenerate¡¯s quick reactions, he promptly hit the brakes. It appeared that the man wanted to flee from the scene to avoid having his identity exposed. After he parked the car, he flung the door open and jumped out brazenly. His first objective was to catch up with the scoundrel. The degenerate scrambled on his feet and began charging toward the car which the bodyguard had left behind. He crawled into the car and fumbled around trying to start the engine. It was unfortunate that his opponent was Callum. Old Mrs. York had always had high standards for her heirs and demanded that they not only excel in the domain of intellect but physicality as well. All of the men of the family were well¨Ctrained in martial arts. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. They made sure to exercise regrly and could ace a hundred¨Cmeter¨Csprint considerably faster than the average adult male. The degenerate barely had time to close the door before Callum caught up to him and swung the door open. He wasted no time and immediately grabbed the rascal¡¯s arm to toss him out of the Chapter 1347 Chapter 1347 Chapter 1347 The man turned around and swung a fist aimed at Callum¡¯s face. Callum dodged and countered with a punch of his own. The man jerked his head to the side and barely managed to avoid the hit. It was very cramped inside the car, which greatly limited the man¡¯s range of movement. Despite his best attempt to fight Callum off, it was going to be a downhill battle no matter what since he was sitting while Callum was standing. Callum was driven by rage andpletely relentless. Several minutester, Callum gave the degenerate a terrific beatdown. After ensuring that there would not be any further resistance, he dragged the man out of the car. He threw him to the ground so he could take a closer look at the man with the help of the streetlights. The degenerate¡¯s face had beenpletely pummeled to a point that he was unrecognizable. His face was swollen and his nose was broken. The only clue Callum was able to decipher was that the man was in his forties to fifties. ¡°How dare you hurt Camryn. I¡¯ll kill you!¡± Callum jabbed a kick at the degenerate and roared sharply, ¡°Camryn is my sister¨Cinw¡¯s friend, messing with her means you¡¯re messing with my family!¡± The man did not utter a word. He had barely said a word since the beginning of their confrontation. Callum went and plucked the keys out of the ignition, then he mmed the door shut to prevent the man from escaping. After that, he took out his phone to take a picture of his face. That way, even if the scum somehow managed to get away, he would still have photographic evidence that he could hand to Josh to figure out who this person was. After taking a clear picture, he kicked the scum again before running off in the direction Camryn wasst seen. Camryn ran desperately, as fast as her legs could take her. She had no idea which way she was running at all but she continued to run. Her only concern was to get as far away as possible. When she eventually heard the sound of someone else pursuing her, her initial thought was that the dangerous man had caught up to her. She picked up her speed again and ended up tripping over a tree trunk and tumbled to the ground. She scrambled on the ground and opened her eyes as wide as she could to make out her surroundings. It was no help¨Cher vision was blurred and everything around her swayed around like a mirage. She saw double everywhere she turned. The more she tried to force herself to see, the more her head ached. ¡°Camryn!¡± She heard a familiar cry. She had just risen to her feet when she heard the cry. She immediately recognized the voice. It was the unmistakable voice of Callum York. Why was he here? ¡°Camryn.¡± Callum finally caught up to her and was immediately relieved to see that although she was in an awful state with no shoes on, she was not hurt in any way. ¡°Mr. Callum?¡± ¡°It¡¯s me.¡± ¡°Why are you here?¡± Callum reached out and gently tapped her. He spoke gently, ¡°I told you that I was going to send you home but you refused. My sister¨Cinw had specifically instructed me to send you home I tonight so I got worried and decided to follow the bodyguard¡¯s car. I figured I should at least ensure that you reached home safely.¡± ¡°I have a pocket knife on me,¡± Camryn muttered. ¡°What difference does it make if you have a hidden knife? If you can¡¯t even see, that guy is just going to grab the knife and throw it away as soon as he sees it. Even if he doesn¡¯t manage to do that, how are you going to get him when you can¡¯t see? Are you going to swing it wildly and pray for a miracle?¡± Camryn fell silent. ¡°Let¡¯s go, we¡¯ll talk about itter.¡± Callum did not have the heart to lecture her when he saw her pained expression. She could not see. He took two steps forward, bent over, and carried Camryn in his arms in one swift motion. ¡°Mr. Callum, I can walk by myself.¡± Camryn was not used to being carried by a man and immediately tried to wring herself free. ¡°You don¡¯t have your shoes on, so forget about walking. By the time you walk to my car, it¡¯ll be morning. I don¡¯t have the patience to watch the sunrise with you.¡± Callum ignored her objections and insisted on carrying her.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1348 Chapter 1348 Chapter 1348 Camryn stopped resisting atst. She was hesitant in touching Callum and could not find afortable ce to rest her hand. Callum pressed forward with Camryn in his arms and remarked candidly, ¡°You look so tiny so I thought it¡¯d be pretty easy to carry you, but you sure are heavier than you look. If you had run off farther than you had, I¡¯ll be looking at a gruesome workout having to carry you back to the car.¡± Camryn was slightly offended, ¡°I never asked you to carry me¡­¡± She had mentioned that she could walk by herself. It was Callum who insisted on carrying her because he decided that she was going to be too slow without her shoes. ¡°Do you want me to put you down so you can walk?¡± ¡°Sure.¡± She preferred being led by the hand rather than being carried. With that, he put her down gently on the ground. He was being honest when he said that Camryn was too heavy for him. He could only carry her for several more minutes at most. It was not surprising considering this was a full¨Cgrown adult here! The average adult weighed at least eighty to ny pounds. While Camryn was not fat, she was not exactly skinny either. She once had her height and weight measured and was told she was five feet four and weighed ny¨Ctwo pounds. After Callum put her down, he had to massage his tired hands. It was a good thing Camryn could not see, else she would have been upset to see Callum doing that. She felt Callum take her hand and felt the warmth of his palm. ¡°Let¡¯s go. My car is about a thousand feet away.¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Camryn managed to cover some ground while trying to escape. ¡°Thank you, Callum.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have to thank me, it was my sister¨Cinw who looked out for you. She was the one who told me to send you home so I thought I should at least make sure you got home safely even if you wouldn¡¯t let me take you.¡± Camryn could not express how grateful she was toward Serenity. She always thought that she could protect herself well enough but what happened tonight was a brutal wake¨Cup call. No matter how bright and independent she was, her blindness was always going to be a fatal w. She had to ept that she was not a valkyrie seen in ancient times. Even though she had a pocket knife on her, it was more likely that she hurt herself with it in a fight than using it for self¨Cdefense. She considered it a final resort when the situation was dire. ¡°Right now, the most important thing is to heal your eyes,¡± Callum said as he led her on the winding path. Now that he was leading the way, Camryn no longer had to worry about stumbling over roots. Still, Callum had to adjust his pace so she could keep up. He thought he should have insisted on carrying her, but that would tire him out¡­ He should have driven the car to her in the very first ce, that would save him having to walk so much. If Serenity was here and read his mind, she would certainly have a lot to say. She would probably make fun of him and mock him, saying something along the lines of this was why he was single. my course, I want that too. There¡¯s nothing else I want more than to recover my eyesight. As it is, best bet is probably to locate this genius doctor who is said to work miracles. My aunt went to Annenburg to find the doctor some time ago. She called to tell me that the doctor had left Annenburg and that nobody knew where he was going next.¡± Such miracle healers had a way of vanishing without a trace. Callum knew the doctor was not in Annenburg as well. He knew he could not ask Josh to help with locating the doctor. He remembered Josh mentioning that his family was wary of contacting the group of genius doctors from decades ago and would rather not do so. The only solution was to wait. His brother had mentioned to him that there was a certain Dr. Leigh who had some history with the Johnson siblings. Furthermore, the doctor was friends with Mrs. Young¨CJohnson. It was said that the child Mrs. Young¨CJohnson picked up had caught the interest of Dr. Leigh and that she nned to cultivate the child to be his sessor. Callum figured that he should keep an eye on the Johnsons. It was a matter of time before he picked up on some news concerning either Dr. Leigh or the other doctor who was said to be a miracle healer. Additionally, he had also been scouring the country for renowned ophthalmologists. Chapter 1349 Chapter 1349 Chapter 1349 ¡°Don¡¯t worry, it¡¯s only a matter of time before we find Dr. Leigh and have your eyes treated.¡± Callum assured Camryn. ¡°I don¡¯t think you should hold out for the genius doctor though. He¡¯s already pretty old by now and I doubt he¡¯s still practicing anymore even if you find him. Besides, word is that Dr. Leigh has taken over. She¡¯s learned from the legendary genius doctor himself and her skills are unmatched in the medical world.¡± The way Callum saw it, being able to enlist Dr. Leigh¡¯s help was a miracle in itself already. He did not see the need to hold out for the genius doctor. His brother had mentioned that Dr. Leigh was a brilliant practitioner who was very good at her craft and known for making some otherworldly concoctions. She never used her concoctions for nefarious purposes, she mostly used them to instill fear and respect. She was also said to be a brilliant fighter. She had quite a history with Mr. and Mrs. Lafayette and had saved the life of Mr. Lafayette at one point. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. As far as Callum was concerned, Dr. Leigh was a direct sessor of the legendary genius doctor. ¡°Do you know anything about the genius doctor?¡± Callum answered frankly, ¡°No, I don¡¯t. Most of what I know are stories I heard from my brother. Remy has business dealings with York Corporation so Zachary picked up bits and pieces of information here and there.¡± When Ben Young¨CJohnson got married, Zachary went to Annenburg to attend the wedding. ¡°Oh.¡± Camryn stopped probing Callum with questions. After walking for a while longer, they finally reached Callum¡¯s car. Callum opened the door and helped Camryn get in the car. He then went to find the man who he had given a thorough beating, only to find that the man had disappeared. Callum returned to the car and asked, ¡°Do you know the man who tried to hurt you back there?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know him, he¡¯s aplete stranger. He reeked of cigarettes; probably never stopped smoking a day of his life.¡± The only thing she could remember about the man was the repulsive smell of cigarettes. ¡°I couldn¡¯t have a good look at his face when I was confronting him either. By the time I tried to get a closer look, his face was already swollen to the point of being unrecognizable. Never mind that, I made sure to take a picture of him. I¡¯ll send it to Josh first thing tomorrow and ask him to investigate further for me. ¡°He must be a person of status if your mother would willingly hand you over to him. He looks like he¡¯s somewhere in his forties to fifties, so it should be easy to figure out who he is.¡± Camryn stated after a brief silence, ¡°My mother wants to get Carrie out and wants Serenity to drop her charges. She¡¯s a vicious woman and would do anything to achieve her goals. You have to warn Serenity about this after you get back. ¡°Make sure you tell her to be careful. My mother is extremely vtile and it won¡¯t surprise me if she resorts to drastic measures if she has to. She rather drags everyone down with her than sees her enemies prosper.¡± Callum shot a look at her. He then set his eyes back on the road with his hands around his steering wheel while asking, ¡°Are you sure you¡¯re her daughter? Could you be adopted by any chance? I have never seen a mother being so cruel to her daughter.¡± Camryn remained silent. After a long silence, she murmured weakly, ¡°I wish I wasn¡¯t her daughter.¡± Callum suggested sympathetically, ¡°Why don¡¯t you move out? If you don¡¯t have a ce to live, I have plenty of properties under my name and I don¡¯t mind letting you rent one of them. I could charge you cheaper than the market rate since my sister¨Cinw is especially fond of you.¡± He mentioned that he would charge her rent so she would not have cause to suspect him. He was worried she would think he had an ulterior motive in helping her. Fortunately, he could use Serenity as their mutual connection to bridge amon understandin Camryn fell silent again. Callum understood that she was someone with a lot of history and was kind enough to not for her to unveil her story. By the time they returned to the Newmans¡® vi, they saw Mr. and Mrs. Newman pacing outsi the house anxiously. It seemed like they were waiting for someone. ¡°Mr. York?¡± Mr. Newman was visibly surprised to see Callum of all people showing up. His voice was fil with shock, ¡°Mr. York, why are you the one sending Camryn back? Haven¡¯t we assigned a bodyguard at the venue to take her home? ¡°What happened? Where¡¯s our bodyguard?¡± Chapter 1350 Chapter 1350 Chapter 1350 Mr. Newman spoke in a concerned tone. When he noticed the state Camryn was in and how she had lost her shoes, he turned to his wife and asked nicely, ¡°Honey, could you take Camryn into the house?¡± Then, he turned to Callum and made an inviting gesture, ¡°Mr. York, please,e inside.¡± Callum was nning to leave right after dropping Camryn off, but he promptly changed his mind. He decided to have a quick chat with Mr. Newman as a show of respect. Several minutester after Callum ryed what happened, Mr. Newman erupted with rage and cursed out loud, ¡°Damned fool! All I did was give him a strong talking¨Cto. I cannot believe he would turn around and do something like this and try to hurt my niece!¡± He thanked Callum profusely, ¡°Mr. York, you have my most sincere gratitude. If it weren¡¯t for you showing up at the right time, who knows what that nasty excuse of a bodyguard would have done to Camryn?¡± The poor bodyguard took the fall. Meanwhile, Mrs. Newman emerged from Camryn¡¯s room. She felt an enormous swell of anguish deep in her heart. Apart from having her dress ruined and losing a pair of high heels, Camryn wasrgely in one piece. There were minimal wounds on her body and hardly any noticeable bruises at all. Callum had saved her from being disgraced. If she had known this would happen, she would have drugged Camryn at the banquet so she would not have had the strength to resist. The only reason she had not drugged Camryn was that the man said that he did not like his women unconscious. She did not expect the man to be such an imbecile and could not even subdue a blind girl. Also, how did Callum manage to show up just in time to save the blind fool? They were back to square one¨Cwhat would happen to Carrie now? Mrs. Newman was fuming but knew better than to let it show. She joined her husband and Callum and began expressing her gratitude toward Callum as well. Camryn joined them after she changed into a fresh set of clothes and put on a pair of slippers. Callum nced at her and observed that she had returned to her usual stoic self. He grimaced and stayed silent. She approached him and sat on the corner of the couch. She sat passively while she listened to her mother and stepfather yelling at the bodyguards. Her stepfather prattled about wanting to call the police, but her mother stopped him from doing so, stating concerns about damaging Camryn¡¯s reputation. ¡°Mr. Newman, Mrs. Newman, it¡¯s gettingte. I¡¯ll be heading back first.¡± The Newman couple were pretty good actors and Callum knew better than to call their bluff. He told himself that he would find out the identity of the degenerate who tried to take advantage of Camryn first. After he had ample proof, he would avenge poor Camryn. He rose and announced solemnly, ¡°Mr. Newman, Camryn is a good friend of my sister¨Cinw, she cares about Camryn very much.¡± Mr. Newman spoke up frantically, ¡°I understand. It is a great honor for me to say that my niece boasts a good rtionship with Mrs. York. Truly, 1 thank you for Mrs. York looking out for her tonight and entrusting you with sending her home. I wouldn¡¯t know what I¡¯d do if something happened to Camryn. I would have failed my duties and failed her father as well.¡± He said with a tight look of agitation screwed on his face. ¡°I will immediately assign a new female bodyguard to her starting tomorrow and take special care to keep her safe at all times.¡± Mr. Newman gave his word as he walked Callum out of the house. Mrs. Newman followed behind the men. Camryn did not see Callum off, but she did rise on his feet facing his direction as he left. After the sound of their footsteps had faded away, she retreated to her room, shut the door, and locked it. This was the only way she felt safe. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. After Callum was gone, Mr. Newman exchanged a look with his wife. Only then did the two head back into the house. They did not try to pester Camryn again and went upstairs silently instead. After returning to their bedroom and ensuring the door was closed, Mrs. Newman addressed her husband rather sternly,¡± I don¡¯t agree with this decision you¡¯ve made. I understand this is all done to save Carrie, but I cannot bear to see Camryn marrying into the Yorks.¡± She would have chosen death rather than see such an arrangement y out. She only wanted her darling Carrie to marry into the Yorks. Chapter 1351 Chapter 1351 Chapter 1351 ¡°Do you think Camryn can marry into the Yorks even if we want her to?¡± Mr. Newman said, ¡°I don¡¯t want her to marry into the Yorks either. Although I dote on her because she¡¯s my brother¡¯s only child, I love our son and daughter more. How could I possibly let her marry into the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon? ¡°Don¡¯t think about getting Carrie to marry into the Yorks either; she doesn¡¯t stand a chance. Putting aside everything else, the mere fact that we have a beef with Mr. and Mrs. York makes it impossible for the other bachelors of the Yorks to like her. Carrie is only twenty, so there¡¯s no hurry for her to get married now. ¡°What we need to do is to get her out first.¡± Mr. and Mrs. Newman walked to the couch and sat. Thetter asked, ¡°How do we save her? We¡¯ve bowed our heads and apologized, but they were all to no avail. We initially found someone who could help mediate the situation, but it was ruined by Mr. Callum. ¡°Darling, will Mr. Callum recognize that man is from the Marshalls? The man is a Marshall, but he¡¯s their fifth cousin. If he¡¯s identified, the Marshalls themselves will take action to punish him. ¡°His family is five degrees separated from Old Mr. Marshall¡¯s lineage; even though he¡¯s rich, he barely has a say in their family. Mr. Callum probably wouldn¡¯t recognize him. The Yorks are only close to the Marshalls¡® lineal descent, so they might not know anyone from the coteral kins.¡± Mr. Newman said, ¡°Don¡¯t lose your head first. In any case, when they start looking into the matter, we¡¯ll put all the me on the bodyguard. Make him leave Wiltspoon tomorrow.¡± Mrs. Newman responded, ¡°Okay, I got it. Tell me, how should we cling to Mr. Callum?¡± ¡°He saved Camryn, so let Camryn repay him with her body and cling to him. The Yorks definitely wouldn¡¯t want a daughter¨Cinw like her. When the timees, we can discuss and say that we only want to bail Carrie out. Once Carrie is out, we don¡¯t have to pester Mr. Callum anymore,¡± Mr. Newman answered. ¡°That b*tch won¡¯t agree to help. She¡¯s dying for Carrie to be sentenced. Besides, what if the Yorks ept that little b*tch sleeping with Mr. Callum?¡± Mr. Newman remarked, ¡°She¡¯s blind¡­ How could Mr. Callum marry her? Coax her tomorrow and stop calling her a b*tch. You gave birth to her, after all. If you call her a b*tch, you¡¯re saying the same about yourself.¡± Mrs. Newman pouted her mouth and said, ¡°Whenever I see her, it¡¯s like seeing her father. I can¡¯t help but despise her, and I even want to kill her so she can reunite with him. I shouldn¡¯t have been soft back then and should¡¯ve just killed her. She was only two years old at that time, and it would¡¯ve been easy to do so.¡± ¡°I told you not to say things like that anymore. She¡¯s still my brother¡¯s only child, and she¡¯s a blind girl, so it doesn¡¯t affect us. Once Carrie is out, we¡¯ll marry her off to someone else anyhow. Everything will be over then.¡± Back then, Mr. Newman let Camryn stay because she was just a girl who would not get far and would not be a threat to him. Furthermore, Camryn was a daughter of the woman Mr. Newman loved the most. She looked like his brother and his wife, so he loved her as well. Mr. Newman could not bring himself to be ruthless toward the innocent child who would adorably call him her uncle.This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Our room has soundproofing. This house is already under our control, so why do we have to be afraid of her eavesdropping on us? I can¡¯t wait to kill her! ¡°If your little sister hadn¡¯t suddenly returned to visit ten years ago, Camryn wouldn¡¯t have been sent to the hospital and would¡¯ve died long ago. ¡°Luckily, her eyes were damaged, and she became blind. She can¡¯t threaten us at all now.¡± Ten years ago, Mrs. Newman found out that Camryn seemed to be suspecting herte ex- husband¡¯s death and the girl was secretly asking around to collect evidence. That was why she did something cruel to Camryn. Who knew, her sister¨Cinw came back to visit and saved Camryn. If Camryn¡¯s eyes were not damaged, she could not have survived. ¡°Alright, alright, let¡¯s not talk about this anymore. It¡¯s gettingte. Go remove your makeup and rest early.¡± Mr. Newman did not want to talk about the past any further. He got up and left. When he saw the cane in the corner, he asked, ¡°Why is Camryn¡¯s cane in our room?¡± ¡°I told her toe in so I could help her with her makeup, but she tried to go out with the cane, so I kicked it away and left it here.¡± Mrs. Newman walked over while she spoke. She picked up Camryn¡¯s white cane and then walked to the door to open it and throw the cane outside. There were no more talks that night. Serenity did not wake up until the sun was up. After rubbing her eyes and stretching, she sat up but felt a headache. Chapter 1352 Chapter 1352 Chapter 1352 Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. The headache wasing from a hangover. Serenity endured the headache and reached for her phone to check the time. It was ten in the morning. She muttered, ¡°When he wakes up, he goes off and leaves me alone in the room; when I wake up first, he¡¯ll say I¡¯m leaving him behind and abandoning him.¡± Knock, knock. There was a knock on the door. Thinking it was the maid, Serenity answered, ¡°Come in.¡° The door was pushed open, but it was her sister, Liberty, who came in. Her nephew, Sonny, followed behind. ¡°Liberty?¡± Serenity was surprised to see her sister. After all, her sister¡¯s breakfast ce had not closed at this hour. ¡°Liberty, why are you here?¡± Serenity was about to turn over to get out of bed, but her head ached more due to the sudden huge movement. She had slept all night, so why was her head still aching? She only drank a few sses of wine. Liberty walked over and sat on the edge of Serenity¡¯s bed. She looked at Serenity and asked, ¡± Does your heart hurt?¡± ¡°No, it doesn¡¯t,¡± Serenity smiled and lied. ¡°I closed early today and came to see you. How much did you drinkst night?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t have many. Liberty, it¡¯s hard not to drink when you¡¯re socializing. I only drank a few sses - just a few sses.¡± Serenity knew her sister had always not allowed her to drink and had asked Zachary to watch her so that she would not drink wine as if it was water. Her sister also said that her alcohol tolerance was very poor although she liked to drink. ¡°Zachary said you drank a lot of wine and kept praising how good it was when you wereing home. Socializing requires you to drink, but you do it in moderation. How many times have I told you that?¡± Liberty also had social engagements in the past due to work. She had to drink but would not drink too much as she understood her tolerance. In short, Liberty always kept a clear head and was nimble whenever she socialized, lest to be schemed by other people. ¡°Zacharyined about me to you.¡± After saying that, Serenity was lightly poked by her sister on the forehead. Serenity touched where she was poked by her sister andined softly, ¡°He just likes to tell on me. Whenever I do something bad, he goes to you extra fast toin about me. ¡°I don¡¯t even grumble about him to his parents.¡± Liberty spoke for Zachary, ¡°Zachary didn¡¯t tell on you; he identally spilled it when I asked him what happened.¡± ¡°He¡¯s the most tight¨Clipped person, so how could he have identally said it? He told on me for drinking in excess. I can see through his little mind. The wine was good. If he hadn¡¯t stopped me after that, I would¡¯ve drunk a few more sses¡­ Liberty¡­ Don¡¯t pull my ear.¡± Mrs. York revealed her thirst for drinks and had her ear pulled by her sister. Chapter 1353 Chapter 1353 Chapter 1353 In fact, Liberty did not use force. Serenity shouted on purpose to make her sister feel sorry for her. ¡°Sonny, quickly save me.¡± Serenity asked for her little nephew¡¯s help. Sonny put in the extra effort. He immediately climbed on the bed and recused his aunt¡¯s ear from his mom¡¯s hand. He even protected his aunt by staying in front of her and said to his mom, ¡°Mom, Aunt Ser will be in pain.¡± Serenity hugged the little one and kissed him on the cheek. She said with a smile, ¡°I didn¡¯t love you for nothing.¡± Liberty poked her sister¡¯s forehead again and said, ¡°Hurry up. Go wash up, change your clothes, ande downstairs to eat.¡± ¡°Got it, my dear old sister.¡± ¡°Am I very old?¡± ¡°No, no. My sister is still very young, like an eighteen¨Cyear¨Cold girl.¡± Serenity had a strong desire to live. Liberty responded amusingly, ¡°I¡¯d like to be eighteen but unfortunately, I¡¯m not Aphrodite, and I can¡¯t stay eighteen every year. I¡¯m going to pick up the car this afternoon. Are you free to go with me? Also, the instructor Zachary arranged for Sonny wille this afternoon. He wanted me to tell you that he¡¯ll be back for lunch at noon and will rest in the afternoon.¡± The Marshalls¡® banquet was held on Sunday, and many big bosses returned to work the day after. Mr. York was a dedicated boss, so he also went to work as usual. ¡°Is it the self¨Cdefense instructor?¡± ¡°Mhm.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity let go of Sonny and said, ¡°Then I¡¯ll go wash up now. I¡¯ll go pick up the car with you in the afternoon.¡± Liberty carried her son and said to Serenity, ¡°Hurry up. I¡¯ll wait for you downstairs.¡± ¡°Got it.¡± Liberty walked out of her sister¡¯s room with her son in her arms. While they were still on the stairs, she saw Duncan carrying a box of stuff in. Liberty froze for a moment. Did Duncan not go to work today? Why was he at her sister¡¯s ce? Soon, Liberty came back to her senses and carried her son downstairs. She walked toward Duncan and asked with a smile, ¡°Mr. Lewis, what did you bring for Zachary? It looks quite heavy. You should¡¯ve asked someone else to carry it in.¡± Zachary had housekeepers, drivers, and bodyguards. Duncan did not have to carry things into the house by himself. After putting down the box, Duncan replied to Liberty, ¡°It¡¯s not for Zachary, but for Sonny. I didn¡¯t go to work today and rested at home.¡± He said he was taking a rest but came to Zachary¡¯s house instead, and he came right after Liberty arrived at that. ¡°For Sonny?¡± Liberty looked at the box. ¡°Is it a children¡¯s bicycle? Sonny is still too young, so I¡¯m afraid he can¡¯t ride it.¡± ¡°I bought a small bike, toddler friendly, for Sonny, but it has to be self¨Cassembled. I heard from Zachary that you¡¯re here, so I sent it here and was thinking of assembling it for Sonny so he can ride and y outside.¡± Zachary¡¯s vi covered a massive area. There was more than enough space for Sonny to ride his bike. ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re too kind. How much is the bike? I¡¯ll pay you back.¡± A bicycle was not a windmill¨Cwindmills were not worth anything. Hence, Liberty did not stop Duncan from gifting windmills to Sonny and letting his son ept the various windmills presented to him. Duncan responded, ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t always talk about money to me. Have you not heard of the saying ¡®money talk hurts feelings? I just like Sonny, so he must have what others have. Besides, the toddler bike I bought isn¡¯t expensive¨Cit¡¯s really not expensive, just over a hundred dors. Given my friendship with Zachary, what¡¯s wrong with me gifting a bicycle to his nephew?¡± Chapter 1354 Chapter 1354 Chapter 1354 ¡°I was afraid Zachary would say that I¡¯m stingy and cheap such that I¡¯m unwilling to get Sonny a more expensive bicycle,¡± Duncan added. He pulled Sonny over and pointed at the cardboard box as he said, ¡°Sonny, I bought you a small bicycle. Do you like it? Do you want to ride it?¡± Sonny thought about the other children with bicycles he saw during his evening walks with his mom downstairs at their ce. He nodded and answered, ¡°Dunc, I like bicycles.¡± Duncan smiled. ¡°Then I¡¯ll unpack it now and assemble it for you. I¡¯ll take you outside to ride itter, okay? I also bought you a windmill. If it¡¯s attached to the head of your bicycle, it¡¯ll spin when you ride. It¡¯ll look great.¡± Sonny was full of anticipation. He could not hide his happiness at all. When Liberty heard Duncan say that the bicycle was just over a hundred dors and that he also brought up his friendship with Zachary, she stopped asking him about the bicycle¡¯s cost. She just thought she would let him dine at her breakfast store for free for half a month from tomorrow onward. With that, Duncan unpacked the box and helped Sonny assemble the bicycle. When Serenity came downstairs and saw this, she walked over and asked with a smile, ¡°Mr. Lewis, do you not have to work today?¡± Last night at the banquet, she saw Duncan and Lily getting along quite well. The two of them even danced to a song after that. Mrs. Lewis smiled from ear to ear. Everyone present was smart, sol they knew Lily was her ideal daughter¨Cinw. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. As such, Duncan and Lily were naturally taken as a pair. Serenity did not expect Duncan toe over when her husband was not even around. He even knew that her sister and Sonny were here. ¡°I got too highst night, so I wanted to rest at home today.¡± Duncan gave the same reasoning. ¡°I bought a small bicycle for Sonny. I heard from Zachary that Sonny is here, so I sent it here.¡± Duncan said while unpacking the bag of tools that were delivered together. He took out the tools and looked at the instructions before he began assembling. Sonny was delighted. He yed with the bicycle parts from time to time or squatted in front of Duncan to watch him work the bicycle. By sending Lego bricks to Sonny and teaching him how to assemble them, Duncan managed to get closer to him. He also made the little one adore him. Hank had cursed Duncan internally for being cunning and using Sonny¡¯s innocence to get closer to Liberty. In fact, Duncan did put some effort into closing the gap between him and Sonny. Now, whenever he wanted to carry Sonny, Sonny would not be as reluctant as before. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m going to eat.¡± Serenity was hungry. After watching for a while, she said to her sister and walked to the dining hall. Liberty did not assemble the bicycle with Duncan. She was not good at putting things together. Whenever she bought things that needed assembly, Serenity would usually be the one doing it. She followed her sister into the dining area. ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s eat together.¡± ¡°No, I¡¯m not hungry yet. Are you having breakfast or lunch now?¡± Liberty roasted her sister. ¡°I¡¯ll just eat a little to fill my stomach. I¡¯ll eat with Zachary again when he¡¯s back.¡± Serenity sent a message to her best friend. After knowing that her best friend was not up yet, she said with a smile, ¡°Jasmine is worse than me; she¡¯s still in bed now.¡± Their bookstore would not be open for business today. Liberty wanted to say something else when her phone rang. ¡°It¡¯s Hank,¡± Liberty said to her sister. Afterward, she picked up her ex¨Chusband¡¯s call. Serenity heard her sister say to her ex¨Cbrother¨Cinw. ¡°You want Sonny to be your flower boy? You¡¯re picking him up now to try on his suit?¡± Chapter 1355 Chapter 1355 Chapter 1355 Hank said on the other end of the line, ¡°Sonny is three years old and is my son, so what¡¯s wrong with him being my flower boy? Where are you and Sonny? I¡¯m at the door of your rented unit and have been hitting the door but nobody is answering. You¡¯re not inside, right?¡± Jessica was standing next to him as she listened to his conversation with Liberty. She rested for a few days after her fight with her sister¨Cinw the other day, so the bruises on her face were gone. Hank bought two more sets of skin care products for Jessica and reluctantly gave her a jewelry set to coax her. Moreover, Hank told his parents and sister that he and Jessica had gotten their marriage license and that Jessica was set on living the rest of her life with him. Since their wedding was approaching, he asked his parents and sister not to pick on Jessica anymore. He also med them for his divorce from Liberty back then. He asked his parents, ¡°Do you want me to divorce again? Think about the cost of my divorce from Liberty. Do you want me to do it again? ¡°If I divorce again, I¡¯ll be aughing stock. People will say that I deserve it and that it is karma. They¡¯ll say that I¡¯m a twice¨Cdivorced man. Also, if you keep fighting with Jessica and causing trouble, who would still want to let their daughter marry me? You¡¯re my family, and yet you always think of dragging me down instead of thinking for me. Are you only going to be satisfied if I live alone for the rest of my life?¡± Hank¡¯s parents stopped after hearing what he said. They also began cooking Jessica¡¯s share of meals. As for Hank¡¯s sister who kept stirring up trouble, she was kicked out by their father. She was ordered not toe to the city before the wedding and could onlye on that day to attend the wedding. ¡°Tell Liberty that we¡¯re going to pick up Sonny,¡± Jessica said softly. When she went for her morning run earlier, she received another note from that unknown woman. The woman asked her to find a way to take Sonny away from Liberty as soon as possible without choosing a location. As long as Sonny was taken away from Liberty, someone would ¡°snatch¡± him from Hank and Jessica. Jessica also wanted to get it done and over with. She did not want to worry about the matter during her wedding. She began harboring ill intentions because of how her inws treated her aspared to how they treated Liberty and her son. If Sonny was no longer in the equation, how would the Browns still pine for Liberty and Hank to remarry? Jessica managed to snatch Hank. Even though he was no longer a manager, he gave her most of the money he earned from being an Uber driver. Hank was her man and her husband now. She would defend her marriage to her death. She would never let herself go down the same road as Liberty. Liberty had a sister who married into a rich family and could help her, but not Jessica. Jessica did not want to beughed at by other people. She did not want them to think that she did not gain anything after getting rid of Hank¡¯s first wife and that her inws were united against her. She felt that her inws were only having wild thoughts because of Sonny. They must have thought that Hank and Liberty could remarry if Hank and Jessica separated. The Browns were simply whimsical. What did they take Liberty for? And what did they take Hank for? Did they think Hank was the US currency everyone loved? Did they think Liberty was easy to handle and be at their beck and call? Liberty did love Hank back then, but she no longer loved him now. She was very clear¨Cheaded, so why would she return to the Browns and get stuck in the ck hole again? Hank gestured for Jessica to keep quiet. He continued to ask Liberty, ¡°Liberty, are you listening to me? I asked where you and Sonny are now.¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°I¡¯m at Seren¡¯s ce. Where are you taking Sonny to try on his suit? Why does a little kid need to try on a suit? As his father, you can just buy a small kid¡¯s suit for him.¡± Chapter 1356 Chapter 1356 Chapter 1356 Hank said, ¡°Even if I buy a small suit for Sonny, I have to take him along. I don¡¯t know what size he is. What if it¡¯s too big or too small?¡± Liberty immediately told him Sonny¡¯s size and said, ¡°Buy his suit ording to this size. It¡¯ll fit him.¡± ¡°Liberty, are you stopping me from spending time with my son? When we got divorced, we agreed that I can see my son whenever I want to. Now that I miss him and want to buy some clothes for him, you won¡¯t even let me see him.¡± Liberty hung up the phone right away. Ever since she became suspicious of Jessica, she no longer dared let Hank take Sonny away again. Hank probably listened to Jessica because he did not know that she was being used. When Jessica suggested that Sonny be their flower boy, he agreed without much thought. He also felt that there was no need to find someone else to be the flower boy, so he let Sonny have the role. Sonny could talk well and was sensible. He was slightly taller than his peers, so he would be suitable as the flower boy. Hank also felt that his son was bing more handsome, so he would feel prouder if his son became the flower boy. After all, Sonny was Mr. York¡¯s nephew. ¡°How is it?¡± Jessica asked. Hank moved his phone away from his ear and showed her. He said angrily, ¡°Liberty hung up on me. She¡¯s starting to disregard me more now. She answers my call when she wants to and hangs up if she doesn¡¯t want to listen to me anymore.¡± Jessica wanted tough when she heard what Hank said. Hank was too well taken care of by Liberty in the past and was used to being respected. He wanted Liberty to keep ttering him. ¡°Hank, it¡¯s been months since you and Liberty divorced, and you still haven¡¯t adapted to it?¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°Where are Liberty and Sonny now? If she won¡¯t send him to us, we¡¯ll go pick him up.¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Hank responded, ¡°She said they¡¯re at Serenity¡¯s ce. Serenity lives in Brynfield, but we can¡¯t get in. Liberty won¡¯t let me take Sonny to try on his suit, but she isn¡¯t against him being the flower boy and asked me to just buy a kid¡¯s suit for him. She told me his size and said that the suit will fit him if we buy it ordingly.¡± ¡°Buy? We¡¯ll just rent it. How are we going to choose a suit if we don¡¯t bring Sonny along?¡± Hank looked at her and suggested, ¡°How about we just buy a kid¡¯s suit for Sonny? I¡¯m his father, so it¡¯s only right for me to buy him some clothes. ¡°Since I know his size now, I can buy the right clothes for him without needing him to be present.¡± Jessica was unhappy. ¡°Hank, I think Liberty just doesn¡¯t want us to get close to Sonny, afraid that we¡¯ll take her ce in his heart. Although I¡¯m his stepmom and am considered his mom, how can I be compared with his biological mother? ¡°She¡¯s feeling a sense of crisis now and is stopping you from seeing Sonny whenever you want, which is what you agreed when you divorced. If she¡¯s not letting you take Sonny to shop for clothes as his dad, doesn¡¯t that mean she doesn¡¯t want you to get close to Sonny?¡± Hank was already feeling that Liberty was stopping him from spending time with his son. After hearing what Jessica said, he felt even more strongly that Liberty was getting bolder and did not want to keep her promise. Chapter 1357 Chapter 1357 Chapter 1357 Hank said with a solemn expression, ¡°Sonny is my son and will always be my son. If Liberty won¡¯t let me see him, I can go to court with her again to fight for his custody.¡± Jessica could not let Hank fight for Sonny¡¯s custody. She immediatelyforted him, ¡°You¡¯re an Uber driver now without a regr ie. We¡¯re having our wedding soon and will go on a honeymoon after that, so it won¡¯t be wise for you to fight for his custody.¡± She only wanted to use Sonny and not take care of him. Jessica would still have a child in the future. If they were to take Sonny with them, Hank¡¯s love would be split between them. ¡°Liberty closed her store early today to go to her sister¡¯s ce. Let¡¯s go to her diner earlier tomorrow and pick up Sonny to try on his suit. It doesn¡¯t matter if we do it tomorrow.¡± Hank said angrily, ¡°If not for Liberty, we wouldn¡¯t have lost our jobs. After Liberty took a share of my property worth more than a million dors, I thought we could earn the money back in no time. In the end, we lost our jobs not long after the divorce. We can¡¯t find good jobs now.¡± As such, he could only be an Uber driver. The little money he was earning at the moment could not bepared with what he used to make as a manager. In the past, his monthly ie was an ordinary person¡¯s annual ie. Now¡­ Hank¡¯s family always said his situation now was because of his divorce from Liberty. He was able to be promoted to manager with higher pay and was deeply trusted by his boss because Liberty brought fortune to him. On the other hand, Jessica brought him back luck. After marrying her, he lost his job and could not earn money anymore, so he could only use the money he already had. Their family also lost their peace ever since she appeared. Back then, Liberty renovated their house with her savings and was devoted to their small family. On the contrary, Jessica had been reluctant to spend her savings, so Hank had been paying for almost all of their family¡¯s expenses. His parents felt that he suffered a huge loss. However, they did not know it was Serenity and Liberty who had caused everything as a form of revenge on him. ¡°Hank, there¡¯s no point talking about that now. Liberty¡¯s sister has such a good life. Many women failed to conquer Mr. York, and yet she unknowingly became the Yorks¡® missus. Comparisons are odious.¡± Jessica was also envious. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. She thought the same as Hank. If Serenity had not married into a rich family and used Mr. York¡¯s power to suppress and take revenge on her and Hank, they would be living a free and easy life at the moment. Hank and Jessica¡¯sbined monthly ie would have been six figures. Some people could not even earn as much money in a year. Would they not have lived a good life? Jessica could have apanied Hank to various business receptions and made friends with many elites and heads ofpanies. She would not need to fight with her inws every day as she did now. The Browns were all about money. Whoever had money was good. Liberty did not have an ie in the past, but Jessica did, so the Browns thought that thetter was better than the former. Now, it was the other way round as Liberty had an ie while Jessica did not. The Browns then thought that Jessica was a bearer of bad luck whereas Liberty would bring good luck to her husband. They kept urging Hank to divorce Jessica and remarry Liberty, which infuriated Jessica. ¡°Hank, let¡¯s go.¡± Jessica took Hank¡¯s arm. The couple went downstairs together and left Liberty¡¯s rented unit. ¡°Hank, can you send me back to my mom¡¯s house?¡± Chapter 1358 Chapter 1358 Chapter 1358 Jessica was not able toplete the task given to her by the unknown woman. She was worried that the other party would act on her family again, so she wanted Hank to send her home. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Her family was also in the countryside. Hank was not too fond of visiting his mother¨Cinw. Every time he went, his mother-inw would say that she was feeling unwell and that shecked some things at home. Whenever he heard her, he would give her some money as he felt sorry for her. Although he did not give much, this happened every time he visited. He felt ufortable about it as if his mother¨Cinw was taking him as an ATM. Luckily, Jessica truly liked Hank and wanted to spend her life with him. When his mother¨Cinw demanded a high amount for bride price, Jessica stood by his side and went ahead to get their marriage license behind her parents¡® backs. There was nothing his mother¨Cinw could do. In the end, the bride price was reduced to tens of thousands of dors. Even so, it was still a high figure in Wiltspoon¡¯s countryside. After all, they were ordinary and not. rich families, so they could not bepared to those wealthy people. Nevertheless, after receiving the bride price, the Yateses explicitly said that the Browns would have to pay for the wedding reception, or they would not hold it at all. If that happened, the Yateses would bring a group of rtives to the city to have a wedding dinner at the Browns¡® residence instead. Hank discussed it with his parents and agreed to the Yateses¡® request. On the day of the wedding, both families and their rtives would get together to celebrate. The reception was set in a restaurant, but they did not dare choose a ssy hotel as they could not afford it. The Yateses would not give Jessica dowry and would only give her a few bedding sets. If she felt that her dowry was shabby, she could ask her husband to pay for her dowry, or she could pay for it out of her pocket. Whether it was the Browns or the Yateses, they knew Jessica had some savings. The Browns wanted her to pay for the renovation of their marital home, while the Yateses wanted her to help improve her family¡¯s lives. Jessica¡¯s mom even scolded her and said that she was raised for nothing. Her education was provided for, but she did not give back to her family with the money she had earned. Instead, she saved a lot of money for herself. When Jessica worked, part of her monthly sry was for her family, and she saved the rest for herself. No matter what her inws and family said about her, she did not touch her savings. This was her bottom line after marriage. She did not want to be like Liberty, who emptied her savings and had to ask for money from her husband after marriage. Jessica¡¯s mom had always said that a son was not as good as pocket money, and ady needed money to stand on her own. If she expected Hank to support her, she would only follow in Liberty¡¯s footsteps. Once the wedding was done and Sonny¡¯s matter was over, Jessica would look for a job. Even if she could not find a secretarial job, she would work as an ordinary clerk or open a store as Liberty did. If she was the boss, whatever she earned from the business would belong to her. ¡°I¡¯ll send you to the entrance of your housing area and you can walk home. I¡¯m not going in. I¡¯m scared of your parents. Every time I visit, they say they¡¯re unwell and need money to see the doctor. They just want my money. ¡°Otherwise, they¡¯ll say theyck certain things at home and ask me to buy those things for them. After that, they¡¯ll say they don¡¯t have the money to pay me back and will owe me first. How can I ask them to pay me back?¡± Hank said while getting into the car. He disliked his inws very much. Jessica said, ¡°My parents are getting older, so they¡¯re often unwell.¡± ¡°If they¡¯re unwell, what about your brothers? Why won¡¯t they pay for your parents to see the doctor? Besides, do your parents have no money? They have the bride price I gave them, and they¡¯re not giving you dowry. Isn¡¯t that money?¡± Chapter 1359 Chapter 1359 Chapter 1359 ¡°Your parents treat me as a dupe. Do they think I¡¯m rich? I¡¯m just an Uber driver now!¡± Hank said to Jessica. He had been in a bad mood since Liberty hung up on him. As such, he took it out on the Yateses. Jessica agreed that her parents were covertly asking for money. Her mom used to do the same. when she went home to visit in the past. In any case, Jessica had always given half of her sry to her family. No matter what her mom said after that, she did not give more. Over time, her mom stopped trying. Even so, Jessica could not stand Hankining about her family. As bad as they were, they were her parents, her brothers, and her sisters¨Cinw. ¡°Don¡¯tin about my parents. They¡¯re my parents, and it was hard for them to raise me. Now that you¡¯ve married me, you¡¯re their son¨Cinw. A son¨Cinw is like half a son. What¡¯s wrong with giving them some money for them to see the doctor? ¡°Have your parents not asked you for money before? Also, your outrageous sister is extremely shameless. I¡¯ve never seen such a shameless person. She has been married for over ten years and still intervenes in her maiden family¡¯s affairs. ¡°Your parents and your sister are the same. Hank, I¡¯m telling you, I¡¯m only putting up with your family because I love you. Do you think some other woman can tolerate it?¡± Hank had started the car, but he turned off the engine after hearing Jessica use his family. He refuted, ¡°What¡¯s wrong with my parents asking me for some living expenses? You were raised by your parents, but I wasn¡¯t? N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Was it easy for my parents to raise me? You say that a son¨Cinw is like half a son, so I should. honor your parents. Since you married into my family and became a daughter¨Cinw of the Browns, shouldn¡¯t you honor my parents too? My sister has always been like that. What can I do about it? I can¡¯t cut ties with her¨Cshe¡¯s my only sister!¡± Jessica replied, ¡°Do you think your sister is family for life whereas your wife can be reced at any time? Is that why you keep helping your sister and siding with your family? The money your parents received from you has always been used to subsidize the spending of your sister¡¯s family. ¡°Your sister¡¯s children were all raised by your parents. Their pensions and the living expenses you gave are all used to support her family¡¯s spending What did your sister give back to your parents? What has she given back to you? ¡°You always say that my parents only think about helping my brothers, why don¡¯t you criticize your parents for helping your sister? My brothers aren¡¯t rich, but is your sister not? Her savings are definitely more than yours! When your brother¨Cinw wanted to open a hardware store, they even wanted to borrow money from us. Only someone as thick¨Cfaced as Chelsea could do something like that. ¡°If she¡¯s so capable, she should ask Liberty for money and ask for her breakfast store. Liberty¡¯s diner is doing so well and rakes in money every day. If she¡¯s sopetent, she should go to Liberty instead!¡± Jessica became angrier as she spoke. She must be crazy to think that marrying Hank could change her fate. Jessica did note to a realization after seeing Liberty¡¯s fate and thought she could control the Browns. She thought Hank would always listen to her and be on her side for the rest of her life. Once she changed from being his lover to his wife, she realized that she was too naive. ¡°Can you stop bringing Liberty up? My sister is thick¨Cskinned? Is your family not? How dare they ask for a bride price of 777,777 dors? Did they think I own a bank that prints money? Are they marrying their daughter or selling her off? If I had met their requirements, they would¡¯ve used the money for your brothers anyway. ¡°Your mom sold her daughter and used the money she got to help someone else¡¯s daughter. She doesn¡¯t care about what happens to her daughter after the marriage,¡± Hank retorted with a darkened expression. Neither Hank nor Jessica wanted to take a step back. They sided with their respective family and had a big fight in the car. When Hank could not win the fight anymore, he got out of the car abruptly and went around to the passenger seat to pull Jessica out of the car. He said furiously, ¡°You can walk back to your biased family. ¡°I, Hank Brown, won¡¯t be your family¡¯s ATM. My money doesn¡¯t fall from the sky!¡± Following that, Hank returned to his seat and quickly drove away. Jessica shouted and cursed at the distant car. In the end, she even yelled, ¡°Hank Brown, let¡¯s get a divorce!¡± The wedding had not even taken ce, but she felt she could no longer go on with Hank. Hank drove away and did not hear Jessica asking for a divorce. Tears of aggravation streamed down. Chapter 1360 Chapter 1360 Chapter 1360 Jessica could not help but squat on the ground. She covered her face and cried. After crying for a while, she stood up and took out a piece of tissue to wipe away her tears and snot. She then walked forward. Divorce? She would not divorce for the time being. If she did, what would she do if she could notplete the task given to her by the unknown. woman? What would happen to her family? Besides, Jessica had snatched Hank from someone else. If she simply separated from him, would be laughed at for getting what she deserved. she Jessica gritted her teeth and told herself that she could not bow down or retreat. She must teach the Browns a lesson. She definitely would not follow in Liberty¡¯s footsteps! Liberty was clueless about the conflict between Hank and Jessica. She had only hung up rudely because she did not like the tone of Hank¡¯s speech. She did not want to care about her ex¨Chusband anymore. If he truly wanted to buy clothes for Sonny, he should be able to buy suitable clothes for his son since she had informed him of Sonny¡¯s size. In any case, Liberty would not let her son go out with Hank and Jessica¨Cunless she had time to tag along. The zoo incident was still hovering over her head like a big shadow, giving her lingering fears. whenever she thought about it. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Liberty dared not imagine the consequences. By the time Serenity was done eating, Duncan had finished assembling the small bicycle for Sonny. Sonny was overjoyed and wanted to ride it immediately. Duncan apanied him to the courtyard outside to ride his bicycle and Liberty followed suit. By the time Serenity went outside, Sonny had learned to ride a bike. He was cycling fast on the concrete road. The windmill that Duncan bought him was attached to the front of the bicycle. It moved with the bicycle and spun in the wind. It was beautiful. The yard was filled with Sonny¡¯sughter. Liberty took out her phone to record a video. Duncan walked over and stood by her side. He said with a smile, ¡°I was afraid the bicycle was too big for him. Luckily, it fits nicely. If it was slightly bigger, Sonny wouldn¡¯t be able to reach the pedals and couldn¡¯t ride it.¡± ww ¡°Mr. Lewis, thank you.¡± Liberty stopped recording the video and thanked Duncan. Duncan looked at her. At this precise moment, the sun shone on her face and painted her skin a bright glow. Her face looked fair with a hint of scarlet. ¡®She¡¯s beautiful!¡® Duncan praised internally. This was the first time he realized that Liberty was captivating. Chapter 1361 Chapter 1361 Chapter 1361 ¡°Mr. Lewis?¡± With Duncan staring at Liberty without blinking, Liberty skeptically called him back to earth. Snapping out of his thoughts, Duncan said with a smile, ¡°I guess I see you every day, so I don¡¯t see the difference. I¡¯m only realizing now that you¡¯ve lost a lot of weight. You look good. You can give Lily a run for her money.¡± Duncan was stunned by what came out of his mouth. Why was heparing Liberty to Lily? Liberty answered with a grin, ¡°Thanks for thepliment, but I¡¯m just an ordinary girl. Ms. Harmon is beautiful.¡± This content is ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Liberty, Lily is¡­ the daughter of my mom¡¯s best friend. She¡¯s staying with me for the time being as she¡¯s here on business. My mom loves her like a daughter. You know, we only have boys in my family. My mom doesn¡¯t have a daughter, so she really likes girls. It¡¯s like how Grandma May looks forward to having a great¨Cgranddaughter. That¡¯s how much my mom likes girls too. They¡¯re the same. ¡°Lily is a little younger than me. We met before when we were younger, but I don¡¯t remember anything about it. Since she¡¯s a guest, I would sometimes make time for her, no. I mean, I went to an event with my mom, and my mom brought her along, so I had a dance with her. That¡¯s all.¡± For some reason, Duncan felt the need to exin to Liberty what he did with Lilyst night. He did not want Liberty to think that he and Lily were an item. Truth be told, Liberty had no idea Duncan attended an event with Lily, much less they shared a dance together. Serenity did not tell her sister about this, but it was not like she had the chance to yet. Her sister expressed her disapproval of her drinkingst night the moment Serenity woke up. Liberty had taken strides downstairs before Serenity had the chance to chat about the event. Liberty replied to Duncan, ¡°Mrs. Lewis really embraces Ms. Harmon. It sounds like you and Ms. Harmon get along well. You should spend some quality time together. Ms. Harmon is a decent and fine youngdy. She¡¯s smart and capable too. I can tell she¡¯s a career woman.¡± Ms. Harmon was a good fit for Duncan. Duncan was honest. ¡°That¡¯s true. Lily is a career woman, and she¡¯s smart too. We do get along. Wait, I mean, Liberty, what are you trying to say? Do you want me to spend quality time with her? Do you think we¡¯re a couple?¡± Liberty gleefully answered, ¡°We¡¯re adults, Mr. Lewis. I¡¯ve been there. I know your mom has been nagging you to get married. Mrs. Lewis takes a shine to Ms. Harmon, and Ms. Harmon hits it off with you and is now living with you. I think you know what your mom wants. ¡°No need to feel embarrassed about it. You¡¯re single, and so is Ms. Harmon. You should take your rtionship to the next level if things are going well between you two. Don¡¯t miss out on a girl who Is good for you.¡± Liberty gave advice to Duncan as someone who had been there and done that. ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re not getting any younger. You¡¯re thirty¨Csix years old. What¡¯s wrong with dating? Don¡¯t be picky. Ms. Harmon is a greatdy and a good match for you.¡± Duncan looked at Liberty. He had reasons to believe that his mother possessed Liberty because Liberty was trying to put him and Lily together. Duncan had no hard feelings toward Lily, but there was no chemistry for him to take the step forward. ¡°Liberty, did my mom say something to you?¡± With his mind harking back to when Liberty first met Lily, Duncan had to ask. He had an inkling that Mom had seen Liberty. ¡°No. Mrs. Lewis passed by my diner the other day and dropped in for a visit. We chatted a little. As a mom whose thirty¨Csix¨Cyear¨Cold son is still single, she is keen to talk about her son and wants to find girls for him. I get it. ¡°I¡¯ll probably be worried like Mrs. Lewis is if Sonny turns thirty¨Csix, and there are no girls in his life. ¡°Don¡¯t me your mom for nagging you, Mr. Lewis. That¡¯s generally how parents are. You¡¯ll understand us parents when you get married and have children.¡± Duncan was at a loss for words. A whileter, he said, ¡°You¡¯re younger than me. Don¡¯t talk to me like you¡¯re older.¡± ¡°Oh, I wouldn¡¯t dare. I¡¯m just saying as someone who has been there. I¡¯ve been through marriage, but you don¡¯t even have a girlfriend. You don¡¯t have the experience of sharing a life with someone else.¡± Chapter 1362 Chapter 1362 Chapter 1362 Duncan was speechless. ¡°Do you really think Lily and I are suited for each other? Don¡¯t you think she¡¯s out for my position and wealth?¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Lily¡¯s family has a huge business. She¡¯s the vice president of her family¡¯spany, so I doubt she¡¯s after your money. You have status, but so does she. It¡¯s hard to believe that she¡¯s out for your position and wealth. You two together will only be a union of power and wealth.¡± Liberty gave Duncan a look like he was out of his mind. That question was a bolt out of the blue. Mrs. Lewis was such a prouddy with high standards. The girl Mrs. Lewis picked for Duncan must be beyond amazing. ¡°I mean, I might be the better pick out of all the men Lily knows. That¡¯s why she wants to get. together with me. It¡¯s not that she likes me. I don¡¯t believe she isn¡¯t scared or disgusted by the scar on my face.¡± While fixating on his face, Liberty answered with a smile, ¡°Once you fall in love with Ms. Harmon, you¡¯ll wobble your way to get cosmetic surgery to remove the scar before she even makes that request.¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Liberty, can you not say ¡®wobble¡®¡­ I¡¯m not a penguin.¡± Liberty burst intoughter. She believed Duncan put up his walls and had not put himself out there when it came to women. Duncan was wary and suspected ill intentions even from an heiress and career woman like Ms. Harmon. It was likely he had been single thus far due to his distrust toward women. Someone poor like Liberty could never understand the mind of the wealthy. ¡°Mom, Dunc.¡± Sonny was on the bicycle. He called out to the adults while riding, leaving the pinwheel between the bike handles to spin quickly. He happily freed a hand to grab the pinwheel, only for the bicycle to flip over when he let go. He fell onto the grass by the road. ¡°Sonny.¡± A bunch of people ran over. Duncan¡¯s tall build and long legs came in handy as he sprinted ahead of the rest. He first scooped Sonny up. The little man took a nasty tumble after falling off his bike. He was frowning and on the verge of tears when Duncan picked him up. ¡°Where did you hurt yourself?¡± Liberty and Serenity anxiously asked as they gathered around the boy. Sonny turned around and extended his arms to his mother. With Liberty taking over, he pursed his lips and uttered, ¡°Mom, I fell.¡± ¡°Let me see where you hurt yourself.¡± Liberty put her son down. The sisters bent down to check Sonny for injuries. He was unscathed. The boy had too much fun on the bike and was embarrassed by the first tumble. Hence, the reason tears filled his eyes. Duncan held Sonny¡¯s bicycle up. The front wheel and basket were crooked from the crash. ¡°My bicycle is broken.¡± Sonny, who managed to pull back the tears, could not stop himself from wailing when he saw the state of his bike. Chapter 1363 Chapter 1363 Chapter 1363 Zachary¡¯s personal car drove into the vi. He could hear Sonny¡¯s crying before even getting out of the car. Once the car was packed, Zachary got out and tookrge strides to Serenity. Serenity and her sister were trying to settle Sonny down. Seeing that Zachary was back, Serenity said to Sonny, ¡°Sonny, your uncle is here. Your uncle is the best. He can help fix your bike.¡± Tinkling with the bicycle, Duncan jumped in. ¡°It¡¯s okay, Sonny. I can fix your bike. No need to trouble your uncle.¡± It was a tiny issue from the bike being overturned. It was an easy repair. As Zachary drew close, Sonny put his hands out to his uncle. With Zachary holding him, he cried and asked, ¡°Uncle Zack, my bicycle is broken. Can you fix it?¡± Zachary gestured for Serenity to bring him a tissue. Serenity grabbed a tissue and handed it to him. Zachary wiped away Sonny¡¯s tears and tenderly uttered, ¡°Dunc is repairing your bike right now. Don¡¯t worry, your bicycle will be okay. It¡¯s just a small problem. Don¡¯t cry. Sonny is a man. You can¡¯t cry in the face of every tiny issue. ¡°We men should shed blood and not tears. Get it?¡± Sonny whimpered. ¡°But I feel hurt and want to cry.¡± Zachary asked affectionately, ¡°Why do you feel hurt? Is it because your bike is broken? Did someone break it?¡± ¡°No. I let go and the bike turned.¡± ¡°So you were the cause of it. Why do you feel hurt? So your bike turned. You must remember not. to make the same mistake again. The dent on the bicycle is a minor issue. We, adults, can fix it for you. You don¡¯t have to cry even if we can¡¯t fix it though. ¡°We can always call a specialist to repair the bike if we can¡¯t do it ourselves. They have the tools and technique, but in the event that the bicycle is beyond repair, we can just get a new one for you. There¡¯s no need to cry. We must think of solutions when we experience problems instead of crying. Crying doesn¡¯t solve anything. People will only think of you as weak to cry when running into problems.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Babe, that¡¯s too much for Sonny to take in.¡± ¡°Well, I still need to tell him. One day, he¡¯ll get it.¡± Liberty agreed with her brother¨Cinw. That was how she educated her son too. She believed education should begin early and at home without putting it on pause because they were young. ¡°Alright, Sonny. Your bicycle is fixed,¡± said Duncan with a smile after putting Sonny¡¯s ride back together. Sonny cocked his head and looked at his bicycle. It was as good as new. The boy slipped out of Zachary¡¯s arms and checked out his bike with a beaming face. It was really repaired. ¡°Thank you, Dunc. You¡¯re the best! You¡¯re better than Dad!¡± Sonny expressed his gratitude and even pointed out that Duncan was better than his father. His dad could not even assemble the Lego bricks, but Dunc could build the Lego bricks and repair his bike. Exuding softness in his expression, Duncan reached out to stroke Sonny¡¯s head and confidently said, ¡°I am better than your dad.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Hank was no match for him. ¡°Uncle Zack, I can ride a bike. I¡¯ll show you.¡± Since Sonny wanted to perform for Zachary, thetter dotingly said, ¡°Okay. Show me.¡± Sonny pushed his bicycle to an area and rode away as the adults watched him. He did not get far and soon returned to where the adults were. Zachary took Sonny off the bike and praised the boy, ¡°You¡¯re amazing, Sonny! Do you want to learn. to ride it better?¡± ¡°I do.¡± Chapter 1364 Chapter 1364 Chapter 1364 ¡°You can ride the bicycle better if you pick up the art of self¨Cdefense. Do you want to learn to fight?¡± ¡°I do.¡± Zachary carried Sonny to a man in ck who was standing not too far away. As he was walking. Zachary said, ¡°Sonny, I got you an instructor to teach you to fight. You must listen to him and work hard.¡± Everybody turned their attention to the stranger. Serenity said to her sister, ¡°Zachary mentioned he¡¯ll get someone to teach Sonny to fight for himself. He can train and learn to protect himself.¡± ¡°That¡¯s kind of Zachary,¡± Liberty was grateful. Her brother¨Cinw did bring it up after what happened at the zoo. Liberty believed boys should pick up a skill for self¨Cdefense. Duncan jumped in. ¡°You could¡¯ve told me that Sonny wants to learn to fight. I can teach him.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re busy with work. I wouldn¡¯t want to bother you.¡± Liberty thought to herself, ¡®It must cost a lot to hire Duncan to be my son¡¯s instructor. Sure, I have made some money now, but that doesn¡¯t mean I can afford Duncan.¡± Zachary hired the son of the instructor who taught him, his brother, and his cousins. Although the son was not as skilled as their instructor, the man knew enough stuff to put Sonny in the right. direction. Reminded by his hefty workload, Duncan smiled without saying anything more. ¡°This is William Jr., the son of William Sr. who taught me, my brothers, and my cousins. He¡¯s really good and has opened a few gyms of his own. A lot of people learn to fight from him.¡± Zachary introduced William to his sister¨Cinw. Liberty said hello to William. William was about Dunca¡¯s age. He was a decent young man with a towering build. Although he looked stern, the man curled his lips when Liberty greeted him. ¡°Hello, everybody.¡± Zachary put Sonny down. William kneeled down, getting at Sonny¡¯s eye level as he sized Sonny up. The man felt Sonny¡¯s limbs and torso before telling Zachary, ¡°Mr. Zachary, we can train your nephew young, and he¡¯ll be able to take down a dozen people alone after years of training. ¡°But I doubt he can be the champion of the world.¡± Zachary answered, ¡°We just want Sonny to learn to fight and protect himself, William. He doesn¡¯t need to be famous for being the best. Just teach him to the best of your ability.¡± The art of self¨Cdefense, for people in their circle, was merely for what it was called¨Cself¨Cdefense.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. There was no need to make a name for themselves in the world of fighting. Many would take it up as a hobby or enjoy a ss or two. The York family hired the real deal to teach them to draw blood because of Grandma May¡¯s wishes. Zachary mentioned that Serenity¡¯s skills were more than enough to take out girls or regr thugs. However, Serenity had no chance of surviving against a real professional. William¡¯s mind was at ease. Instead of feeling ttered, William felt the pressure when Zachary came asking for his help. William was concerned that Zachary may ask for a lot, and that he would not be able to meet Zachary¡¯s demands. William was not in the position to say no because the York boys had learned to fight from his father. That was why William came with Zachary to meet with his future and youngest student. Thank goodness Zachary had no intention of letting the boy be famous in the fighting world. He could focus on guiding the young child in the art of self¨Cdefense. Chapter 1365 Chapter 1365 Chapter 1365 Liberty immediately told her son to greet William Jr ¡°Hello, William.¡± With Sonny greeting his instructor, William responded with a smile. The boy may not have a real talent to learn to fight, but he was the cutest little thing. William had a good first impression of Sonny. ¡°Come in, William.¡± Zachary and Serenity invited William into the house. Taking Sonny by the hand, Liberty took strides into the house with Duncan. ¡°Are you getting your car this afternoon, Liberty?¡± Duncan asked in a seemingly casual way. ¡°Yes, I am.¡± Liberty was all smiles talking about the car. Although she did not buy a luxury car, it was the first vehicle she bought for herself. Liberty was over the moon. ¡°I have nothing to do this afternoon, so I¡¯ll go with you.¡± Liberty turned down the kind gesture. ¡°It¡¯s okay, Mr. Lewis. It¡¯s only taking the car. I¡¯ll just drive the car back. Seren is going with me.¡± Duncan smiled, ¡°I thought you were going alone. I shouldn¡¯t interfere since Serenity is going with you. Be careful. It¡¯s your first¨Ctime driving. Don¡¯t be too nervous. You¡¯ll get used to it.¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°I got my driving license a while ago. The ce I used to work at gave me apany car. I think I drive well.¡± Duncan had no idea what else to say. The group walked into the house and sat down when the doorbell rang. Not too longter, a maid came in and approached Serenity. The maid uttered with respect,¡± Missus, a certain Ms. Harmon wishes to see you.¡± Ms. Harmon? Serenity immediately thought of Lily. She took a nce at Duncan. Feeling the burn of Serenity¡¯s gaze, Duncan answered, ¡°She¡¯s here for you, Serenity. Why are you looking at me?¡± Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything. She told the maid, ¡°Please invite Ms. Harmon in.¡± The maid courteously responded before turning on her heel and leaving. Soon, Lily arrived in the living room. Right behind her, the maid was carrying Lily¡¯s stuff. Serenity rose to her feet and weed Lily with a smile. ¡°You don¡¯t have to bring me gifts. Your presence is good enough, Ms. Harmon.¡± Lily said with a smile, ¡°I heard you like desserts, so I made some in my free time. I hope you don¡¯t mind that I brought you some.¡± She gave the desserts she made to Serenity. The rest was health supplements. ¡°Thank you, Ms. Harmon.¡± Serenity grabbed the desserts and thanked Lily. ¡°I must try them since you made them. I love sweets and desserts.¡± Lily replied, ¡°I love to eat and make them too, but work can get in the way. It¡¯s been a while since I made anything. I hope you¡¯ll enjoy them.¡± Serenity and Lily chatted as they approached the rest of the group. Lily said hello to everybody before taking a seat next to Duncan. While sitting, she stole a nce. at Liberty¡¯s reaction. Liberty maintained a smile on her face without reacting any differently. She was convinced that Liberty had no romantic feelings for Duncan. Chapter 1366 Chapter 1366 Chapter 1366 Now, it was time for Lily to make her move. The maid served tea. Lily picked up a cup and elegantly took a sip. Serenity opened one of the boxes and tried a dessert. As the food was good, she invited everybody to sample. Zachary was not keen on anything sweet. He would only try it if the food was made by Serenity, so he would not bother with anyone else¡¯s. Duncan would prefer not to eat sweet food either. Nevertheless, he would still taste the food out of courtesy. Now that he tried Lily¡¯s dessert, Duncan thought his senses were not overwhelmed by the N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. sweetness, so he took another. Seeing that Duncan grabbed the dessert twice, Lily reflected joy in her eyes. Although Lily said she was here to meet Serenity, everybody, excluding William and Sonny, knew Lily was here for Duncan. Still, Serenity could feel Lily¡¯s intention to be good friends. Zachary and Duncan were best friends, and Lily liked Duncan. If Lily could win Duncan¡¯s heart and be a couple with him, there was bound to be a long¨Cterm interaction between the group. Serenity was open to starting a friendship with Lily. Aunt Audrey told Serenity not to underestimate the circle of married women in the higher society. It was a group of connections to get intel and close deals. Since she was the missus of the York. family, she needed not to cozy up to anyone. She would try not to step on other people¡¯s toes and tried to be close to those whose friendships were worthwhile. Serenity could simply steer clear of those who had ill intentions. Serenity was no longer just representing herself, but Zachary and the whole York family. The philosophy Serenity upheld was not to be a drag even if she could not bring glory to the York. family. ¡°Lunch is ready, sir, missus,¡± Sam said in a soft voice. The couple invited everybody to the dinner table. Zachary hired an instructor for Sonny for one¨Con¨Cone sessions. Nevertheless, William mentioned. that Sonny was a young beginner, so the boy could spend some time building a good foundation. with fellow beginners at his gym. After Sonny got the basics down¨Cpat and was a little older, William could start giving him personal attention. The Yorks had a private gym room, By then, Sonny could take up residence at Wildridge Manor. It would take a while to build a firm foundation. Zachary and his wife would probably move back to Wildridge manor because they would have their own kid. The ce was huge, had a great view, and was secured. The children would be well¨Cprotected there. The kids of the York family were shielded from the outside world before they reached adulthood or stepped into society. Considering that business could get hectic for Liberty, Zachary assigned Jim to drive Sonny back and forth from the gym. Duncan and Lily left together after lunch. William left a business card to Liberty before taking his leave. Sonny would begin his lessons at William¡¯s gym tomorrow. Since Sonny had not started attending kindergarten yet, he had a lot of free time and could take the lessons anytime. Serenity and her husband apanied Liberty to get her car. Liberty joyfully drove her son home once she got the car. Finally, Zachary had some alone time with his wife. ¡°Where do you want to go, honey? I¡¯m all yours. I¡¯ll be with you no matter where you go.¡± Although things were good with the couple right now, they rarely ever went on a date. Serenity slumped against the chair and said, ¡°I¡¯m down with whatever. Just take me wherever you want.¡± She yawned with grace. ¡°I bet you told on me to my sister this morning. My sister walked into the room and said I drank too much.¡± It was a good thing her migraine was subsiding. Otherwise, her sister would give her a piece of her mind. ¡°No. I went to Lewis & Co. to speak to Duncan, but he wasn¡¯t at the office. I had to drop by your sister¡¯s diner since I was passing by. Your sister asked about you, and it just slipped my mouth. I wasn¡¯t telling on you.¡± Serenity let out a snicker. As if she would believe him! Chapter 1367 Chapter 1367 Chapter 1367 Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°Do you want to go horse riding?¡± Zachary asked while behind the wheel. Determined to have a date with his wife, he did not allow his chauffeur toe along. He did the driving instead. The security convoy kept a good distance from the couple. ¡°I don¡¯t know how to ride.¡± Serenity was honest. Zachary smiled. ¡°I can teach you. It¡¯s the perfect weather to ride since it¡¯s neither warm nor cold. I¡¯ll take you to the family¡¯s stable.¡± ¡°Your family has a horse stable too, huh?¡± ¡°My family is your family. Don¡¯t be a stranger to me. We have a lot of horses in the stable. A lot of people who love riding would frequent our stable. The equestrian facility had brought in quite the revenue. Those who had done equestrian were loaded. ¡°Dn is responsible for the operation. He lives and breathes horses. He¡¯s doing good in the equestrian business. We can expect a sizable profit every quarter.¡± Serenity remembered Dn as a smiling little sunshine. The boy was tan, probably from racing along the wind on a horse. ¡°Now that you¡¯ve mentioned it, I really want to check out the stable. You can¡¯tugh at me if I can¡¯t get the hang of riding horses.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll teach you. Just take your time.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity let out another yawn before closing her eyes and saying, ¡°I¡¯ll catch up on some sleep. Wake me when we get there, babe.¡± ¡°Have some rest.¡± Serenity mumbled, ¡°I¡¯ve been feeling tiredtely. I wonder if it¡¯s due to the change in weather.¡± Zachary suddenly stopped the car at the side of the road. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± With Zachary hitting the brakes, Serenity thought something had happened. She opened her eyes and sat up to look out the window. Seeing that nothing was going on, she turned to Zachary, confused why he pulled up at the side of the road. ¡°Seren, have you been feeling tired recently and can barely keep your eyes open? Do you feel like sleeping even though you just got up?¡± Serenity gave it some thought before answering, ¡°I don¡¯t feel tired. I just feel sleepy. It¡¯s the change of weather. It¡¯s normal to feel this way. That¡¯s what I usually feel in the past. What¡¯s wrong? You look solemn. Do you think I¡¯m sick? Something terminal?¡± Zachary tapped his finger on her head. ¡°Nonsense. I just thought you have the same symptoms of being pregnant.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°So you think I¡¯m pregnant?¡± Zachary did not hide how he felt. ¡°I secretly asked my mom what women are like when they first get pregnant. At least then I¡¯ll know whether you are when you start showing the symptoms.¡± Serenity opened her mouth to say something, but no words left her lips. What happened to rolling with the punches? He had already done his homework. ¡°No, I need to take you to a physical examination at the hospital. We can¡¯t go horse riding if you¡¯re pregnant. We can go another day if you¡¯re not pregnant.¡± By the time they got out of the hospital after a physical, it would be too dark to go to the stable. Serenity was at a loss for words. It took a remark from Serenity for Zachary to drag Serenity all the way to the hospital. Serenity could just take a pee test to check whether she was pregnant. The oue was negative. Chapter 1368 Chapter 1368 Chapter 1368 This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity had no idea what to feel when she got the results back. Despite engaging in intimate activities for a while, she had not been knocked up Now that Serenity was in the hospital, she intended to do a full medical examination. Zachary did not want to as he believed they were fit and great in health. He simply believed that their time had note yet. ¡°Since we¡¯re here, we might as well go for a physical. What if there¡¯s something wrong with us? Early detection is early prevention.¡± Serenity tried to convince Zachary to have the full medical examination with her. ¡°I¡¯m healthy. I always have a full check¨Cup every six months, so I would know if there¡¯s something wrong with me. You¡¯re fine too. You rarely catch a cold. How can you have an issue? We don¡¯t need an examination. It¡¯s just not our time yet.¡± Zachary dragged Serenity to leave. He was not in the mood for a physical. Zachary firmly believed he was fine! So was Serenity! ¡°Many people look healthy, but something off might show on the medical report. Are you scared of doctors, Zachary? Are you scared you might see something you don¡¯t like?¡± Zachary scowled. ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯m not scared of doctors. Seren, we¡¯ve been together for six months. It¡¯s not strange that you¡¯re not pregnant yet. Don¡¯t think too much about it. We cane for a medical check¨Cup if it¡¯s been a decade and you¡¯re not pregnant yet.¡± ¡± ¡°It¡¯ll be toote if wee ten yearster. I would be pushing forty. It will take years to remedy the issue if something shows up on the report. By then, I would be having a high¨Crisk pregnancy due to my age. There¡¯s also the possibility of it having no cure. ¡°Why can¡¯t we just do an examination since we¡¯re already here? You look like you¡¯ve seen a ghost. I just want to tackle the issue if there¡¯s one so that we can have a baby of our own.¡± ¡°You talk as if I might have a health issue and deliberately try to get out of seeing a doctor. I know my body. You know better than anyone if I¡¯m fine in that department.¡± Zachary¡¯s face turned grimacing. Serenity said, ¡°Yes, yes, yes. You¡¯re fine. You¡¯re in the best of health. It¡¯s my issue. Alright. Then, I¡¯ll get the examination. You don¡¯t have to.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need for you to do the medical examination either. I said we¡¯re both fine. Don¡¯t put the pressure on yourself.¡± Serenity believed that she should at least get a clear idea of where her health was. She should bring her health up to the optimum level if it was not quite there. With the couple unable to prevail over the other, Zachary blew up and shook Serenity¡¯s hand off. Wincing his face, he uttered, ¡°You can do whatever you want.¡± He ditched Serenity and turned on his heel to take strides out of there. The security team exchanged nces as the couple got into a fight at the end of the hallway. While the bodyguards stayed on alert, no one dared interrupt them. Now that Mr. Zachary stormed off without waiting for the missus, the security team knew it was bad. The couple was at it again. Mr. Zachary was furious. In the end, the team of security split into two. Half of them went after Zachary while the other half stayed to protect Serenity. It hurt Serenity that Zachary threw her hand off and walked away with a scowl. She felt a lump in her throat, and tears welling in her eyes as he took off without looking back. She stubbornly refused to let herself cry. All she wanted was to get a physical and see if there was anything wrong with them. They had been married for seven months and had been a real couple for five months. However, she was not expecting yet. Although they were not in a hurry to start a family, there was nothing wrong with ruling things out. If there was a problem, early detection was early prevention. Was she wrong? Zachary¡¯s tantrum as an heir was showing again. Serenity believed there was nothing wrong with Zachary, but why could she not have a medical examination anyway? He looked anticipated when they arrived at the hospital just now. Now the couple had a falling out, and he abandoned her to go off on his own. Chapter 1369 Chapter 1369 Chapter 1369 The bodyguards drew close and stared at Serenity. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°Missus.¡± Drawing a few deep breaths, Serenity tried to get a grip on herself. ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± She lowered her head and looked at the urine test results scrunched in her hands. Serenity folded the piece of paper and slipped it into her pocket before walking away. The security team followed her out of the hospital and into the hospital¡¯s parking lot. While walking, the bodyguards prayed that Mr. Zachary was waiting for the missus in the car. Mr. Zachary had a bad temper, but he was all bark and no bite every time he fought with the missus. Mr. Zachary would never abandon the missus. s, the bodyguards were in for a disappointment. They marched behind Serenity to the parking lot, but Zachary¡¯s car was nowhere in sight. Only two vehicles belonging to the bodyguards were still there. Serenity cocked her head back and asked, ¡°Where¡¯s your car key?¡± With a bodyguard fishing out his car key, Serenity put her hand out. The bodyguard hesitated for a bit before handing the key to Serenity. ¡°You can stop following me now.¡± ¡°Missus,¡± the bodyguards cried. Serenity unlocked the car, pulled the door open, and said, ¡°I¡¯m okay. You can go back to him.¡± Soon, Serenity drove off. The bodyguards stood there as Serenity took off with the bodyguard¡¯s car. Serenity was in a foul mood. After leaving the hospital, Serenity drove around aimlessly. She simply steered ahead so long as there was a road in front of her. It was getting dark. Serenity had no idea how long or how far she had been on the drive. She was on and off the highway, gradually pulling up when she reached an area where cars were scarce. Both sides of the road were rows of trees. She was nowhere near a residential area. Without getting out of the car, Serenity simply sat in the car and stared into nk space. A whileter, she pulled out her phone for a look. There was no activity with her phone; neither an iing call nor a text message. She would not contact Zachary since he was not in touch with her. Serenity did not believe that she was in the wrong. Was she at fault to ask for a medical check¨Cup? They could treat it as an annual health examination if everything was okay. Early detection called for early intervention. 1 Zachary was used to the people abiding by his orders. He would feel challenged if the situation. was otherwise. Fine. If he did not want to contact her, then so be it. Serenity made up her mind to give the sourpuss the snub tonight. After a moment in silence, Serenity turned the car around and headed for the city center. She input the Soxes¡® address in the GPS as she had decided to stay the night at her best friend¡¯s ce. Meanwhile, Zachary made a beeline to Wildridge Manor after leaving the hospital. Tania and her husband were ying chess in the yard. A maid approached and held her tongue as the couple was deep in chess strategies. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Liam smiled at his pensive wife before tenderly talking to the maid. Now that he had retired and kept his hands off the family business, the stern and aloof air around Liam was no more. Liam was a different person now with his mild manners and good temper. The friendliest face in Wildridge Manor for the servants was Liam. Chapter 1370 Chapter 1370 Chapter 1370 ¡°Sir, ma¡¯am, Mr. Zachary is back.¡± ¡°What is he doing here?¡± Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Liam asked skeptically, ¡°Did Serenitye back with him?¡± ¡°Only two cars returned. Mr. Zachary drove one himself, and the other was the security vehicle. It appears the missus isn¡¯t in the car.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Liam then instructed the maid, ¡°Tell the kitchen to cook extra servings. Zachary should at least stay for dinner.¡± The maid wanted tough. This was Mr. Zachary¡¯s home. It was normal that Mr. Zachary could dine at his own ce. Yet, Mr. Liam acted as though Mr. Zachary was the guest trying to freeload a meal. The maid gave the couple some space. Liam turned to his beloved wife. ¡°Have you figured out a way to checkmate? I¡¯m going if you¡¯re stuck.¡± ¡°Let me mull this over. Don¡¯t bother me. I wille up with a way. What did Eunice say? Is Zack back? Oh, he has time toe home?¡± ¡°Who knows? He rarelyes back to the manor now that he has a wife. He usually justes back for a brief talk. It¡¯s like the manor isn¡¯t his home.¡± Tania stood up for her son. ¡°Zack said that you¡¯re his role model. He takes after you. He¡¯s a chip off the old block. You boys are the same.¡± Zachary¡¯s temper was like his deceased grandfather¡¯s. While Zachary has all the hallmarks of his father, Liam was no different from Zachary when he was younger. Only, Liam was now old and retired. He was approachable nowadays because all his time was spent with his wife. As the couple was chatting, Zachary walked into the yard. The bodyguards did not follow him. Seeing that his parents were ying chess, Zachary drew close and stood by his mother. He stared at the chess board from an erect position. ¡°Where¡¯s Seren?¡± lifting her chin, Tania nced at her son and asked. Zachary pursed his lips without a word. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Did you get into another row?¡± Tania asked from experience before turning to her husband. ¡°We should end here, but it¡¯s not that I lost to you. Our son is not in a good mood. I need to talk to him. We will continue this tomorrow.¡± Charts 1370 Tania then messed up the chess pieces. Despite cracking her head, Tania could not gain the upper hand in chess. Still, she was not willing to admit defeat. Hence, she shuffled the pieces and restarted the game tomorrow. Liam was used to his wife¡¯s tactics. He took his time in putting away the chess pieces and asked, ¡°You¡¯re always nuts about Seren. You two were good at the social eventst night. What happened now?¡± ¡°That is how couples can be. Name me a couple who doesn¡¯t fight. We always argued in our younger days,¡± Tania retorted. ¡°Sit down, Zack. Tell me what happened. I won¡¯t take Seren¡¯s side unless she¡¯s not at fault. I stand with the truth. I¡¯ll help you talk to Seren if you¡¯re right and vice versa.¡± Zachary murmured, ¡°Mom¡­¡± Although Mom said she stood with the truth, Mom was clearly backing Serenity up. Of course, Zachary was d that his mother was supportive of Serenity. It meant that Tania had epted Serenity as her daughter¨Cinw. ¡°We argued because our opinions shed.¡± Since Nana was not home, Zachary poured his heart to his parents. Tania asked affectionately, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? I can be the neutral person between you two.¡± ¡°I was going to take Seren horseback riding this afternoon, but Seren talked about her recent fatigue while on the way. I thought she was pregnant, so I changed the itinerary and took her to the hospital instead of the stable.¡± Looking pleasantly surprised, Tania and her husband asked, ¡°Are we going to be grandparents?¡± Liam said, ¡°Zack, your mom and I will be happy regardless of whether Serenity has a boy or a girl. We won¡¯t be like your nana, nagging for a great¨Cgranddaughter. Of course, we¡¯ll be happier if have a girl for us to treat as a princess.¡± Chapter 1371 Chapter 1371 Chapter 1371 ¡°Your nana mentioned that whoever brings a daughter to the family will get a five-hundred-million- dor reward from the family fund. Your mom and I will give you something too. Well, we won¡¯t give more than your nana. We¡¯ll add five hundred million dors to the pot too.¡± Liam and his wife had personal assets amounting to several hundred million dors. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. The extra five hundred million dors out of their pockets was not a small amount to them. ¡°No one has gotten the five hundred million dors. Zack, maybe you and Seren will get lucky.¡± Tania gleefully chimed in. ¡°I¡¯ll give half of my jewelry to my granddaughter if you give us one.¡± Zachary looked at his parents. He waited until his parents had a happy moment to themselves before murmuring, ¡°The pee result was negative.¡± ¡°Negative?¡± Liam turned his attention to his wife whose smile froze. Tania uttered, ¡°It¡¯s okay. You¡¯re still young. You¡¯ve only been married for six months. You still haven¡¯t had your wedding reception. There¡¯s no rush. We¡¯re bound to hear good news since you haven¡¯t used protection.¡± ¡°Oh, she¡¯s not pregnant.¡± Disappointed, Liam said, ¡°I thought I could finally give out the reward to my daughter-inw.¡± Tania immediately consoled him, ¡°It¡¯s okay that she¡¯s not pregnant yet. They¡¯re young. There¡¯s no rush. The wedding preparations are still underway. Her belly will show at the wedding if she¡¯s pregnant now. She¡¯ll have a bump in their wedding photos. Zack, has Seren¡¯s wedding dress been custom ordered?¡± Serenity was the missus of the York family, so she needed a designer to tailor a dress for her. Zachary had not had a wedding dress custom-designed for his wife¡­ It suddenly hit him that he had left a lot of matters on the back burner, probably because he thought he still had time before the wedding. ¡°We got pregnant early, didn¡¯t we, Tania? You had Zack by the time we got back from our honeymoon.¡± Liam had no other intentions when he said this. Nevertheless, Zachary took it the other way. He believed his parents may say they were not in a hurry to have a grandchild, but the truth of the matter was his parents could not wait. His parents must think that he and Serenity should be pregnant as they had been married for months. His mother had him early, carrying him in the belly when she returned from her honeymoon. Zachary had been officially together with Serenity for five months and had gone all the way with Serenity for a while. Still, there were no buns in the oven yet. Did their healthe into y? Since Mrs. Stone said that frequent intimacy had an impact on the chances of conceiving, Zachary had been holding back for a couple of nights. All he did was hold Serenity to sleep. ¡°Zack, did you get into a fight with Seren because she isn¡¯t pregnant?¡± Getting an inkling, Tania red at her husband and asked her son. Zachary fell silent for a while before answering, ¡°Seren was worried that there might be a problem with our health and suggested a body check-up. I said no. I think there¡¯s nothing wrong with me, and she¡¯s healthy too. We both look after ourselves, so I doubt there¡¯s a problem. ¡°She asked if I was scared of the doctors. Anyway, she put her foot down on getting a medical examination, but I didn¡¯t want to. Then¡­ I got mad and ditched her. I left.¡± Liam and his wife were speechless. The next minute, Tania raised her hand and gave Zachary a p. Liam threw the chessboard at his son. The chess board and pieces that had been put away were mmed onto Zachary and scattered on the ground. Zachary winced his face. He looked at his parents. ¡°What¡¯s the problem with getting a physical? Just think of it as an annual check-up. Fine, if you don¡¯t want to get a physical. Why did you ditch Seren? You¡¯re really¡­ Seren probably feels hurt and wants to cry.¡± Tania yelled at her son, ¡°When are you ever going to change that temper of yours?¡± Chapter 1372 Chapter 1372 Chapter 1372 Zachary answered, ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything harsh. I just left. Why would she feel hurt and cry?¡± The thought of Serenity shedding tears broke his heart. ¡°How would you feel if Serenity leaves you alone in the hospital?¡± Tania asked her son. Her son had no game when it came to rtionships. It was no wonder Grandma May made Zachary marry Serenity to repay her kindness. With that temper of Zachary¡¯s, any woman would give him the snub. Zachary pursed his lips and said, ¡°It¡¯s not like I don¡¯t have legs. I know the way. I know my way home even if she doesn¡¯t leave with me.¡± Tania was at a loss for words. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. ¡°I said we¡¯re fine in health, and there¡¯s no need for a physical. She said that I¡¯m scared of doctors and that I looked like I¡¯ve seen a ghost.¡± Zachary whined, ¡°She won¡¯t trust my word. She doesn¡¯t trust me enough. She can¡¯t get pregnant just because we want her to. I¡¯ve not been married to her for long. We can get a physical when we can¡¯t get pregnant in a decade or so.¡± Tania was speechless. Seriously, Tania would never know that she wanted so badly to beat up her son, who had always been her pride and joy, if he did not get married. ¡°You¡¯ll be old in a decade or so. You need time to resolve any issue if anything shows up on the medical report. Seren would have a high¨Crisk pregnancy by then. You b*stard! God knows what is going on in that brain of yours! Would it hurt you to get a medical examination?¡± Liam gave his son a piece of his mind too. ¡°It¡¯s not the problem of getting a check¨Cup or not. He abandoned Seren alone in the hospital and took off himself. Zachary, don¡¯te running to us and ask for our help if Serenity decides to give you the silent treatment. You deserve it. You still think Serenity is acting up and that you¡¯re not the problem.¡± Rising to her feet, Tania pulled her husband up. ¡°Come on, Liam. I think I won¡¯t be able to keep my image as ady for once if I continue to listen to him.¡± Liam walked with his wife into the house. He said to the maid the moment he set foot inside. ¡°Tell the kitchen that the extra serving is no longer required.¡± The maid was confused. ¡°But Mr. Zachary is back. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about him!¡± The maid had no idea what had happened, but it was not her position to ask, seeing that Liam and Tania were furious. She quietly went into the kitchen andmunicated the same to the chef. Zachary sat in silence outside for a while before entering the house. He then realized that his parents had dinner. With Zacharying into the house, Tania told the maid, ¡°Clear the table. We don¡¯t have much leftover, so just dump it.¡± ¡°Mom, I haven¡¯t eaten,¡± Zachary said. ¡°Well, we don¡¯t have anything for you here. You have a wife. Your own family. Go home and have dinner with your wife.¡± Tania wanted to kick her son out. Zachary answered, ¡°Mom¡­ This is my home too.¡± ¡°You¡¯re not weed here so long as you¡¯re not with Seren.¡± Zachary scowled. ¡°Am I your child or is Seren your child, Mom?¡± ¡°I shower Seren with more love and attention because she¡¯s not my child so that she can feel the warmth of a home.¡± Pursing his lips, Zachary turned to his father. Liam uttered, ¡°Don¡¯t look at me. You¡¯re lucky your nana isn¡¯t here. She¡¯ll make you doubt yourself if she were home. You¡¯re lucky that your mom and I don¡¯t have a sharp tongue like your nana.¡± Chapter 1373 Chapter 1373 Chapter 1373 Zachary could not pull a longer face. ¡°Don¡¯t you wish to have grandchildren too?¡± Tania said, ¡°Yes, we do, but we never want to rush Serenity, so don¡¯t put the me on us. We never pressure Serenity to give us a grandchild.¡± ¡°Seren puts the burden on herself.¡± Zachary knew Serenity was feeling it when she talked about getting a physical. He believed Serenity was stressed from trying to get pregnant. ¡°You should be telling Seren that the child wille when the timees if she¡¯s feeling the pressure. It¡¯ll be harder for her to get pregnant while sitting under a lot of pressure. Tell her not to think too much about it. You have not been together for long. I think the medical examination is necessary after two to three years of trying without hearing any good news.¡± ¡°That¡¯s what I¡¯m saying. I don¡¯t think we need a check-up since we¡¯re both fine and healthy. She¡¯s just under a lot of stress. I told her that I¡¯ll take her on a trip after Josh and Jasmine¡¯s engagement party.¡± It dawned on Tania that her son was reminding them not to rush or pressure Serenity even if Serenity did not get pregnant in the next two years. The boy was conniving indeed. As Serenity¡¯s parents-inw, they had never rushed Serenity because the young couple did not even have a wedding reception yet. Tania and Liam did not feel the need to jump through the steps. ¡°Alright now. It¡¯s a matter between you two, so you should take care of it. I can promise you that I won¡¯t rush you into starting a family in ten years. You can decide when you¡¯re ready.¡± With Zachary¡¯s facial lines softening, he said to his mother, ¡°Thanks, Mom.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. Hurry up and apologize to Serenity. Don¡¯t just walk away every time you have a fit. You go nuts when Serenity does it to you. You¡¯re lucky Serenity is nice and tolerates you,¡± Tania peevishly remarked. Zachary uttered, ¡°I got to go.¡± Liam asked, ¡°Are you going to stay for dinner?¡± Tania jumped in. ¡°Dinner? He can forget it and leave hungry. All he needs to do is bend over and cry out in pain when Seren won¡¯t give him time of the day. Seren will feel bad for him.¡± Zachary blushed. ¡°Mom, I never pretended to be sick or poorly.¡± He was really sick thest time he had a stomach ache. Tania nced at her husband before replying, ¡°You have a lifetime to spend with each other. Are you going to guarantee that you¡¯re never going to pretend to be sick or poorly for the rest of your life?¡± Zachary could say nothing. With her mother urging him, he turned on his heel and took strides out of the dining room. As his son¡¯s footsteps faded away, Liam asked his wife, ¡°Tania, what was with the look just now?¡± ¡°It means what you think it means.¡± ¡°It¡¯s been years now.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll always remember no matter how many years have passed.¡± Liam chuckled. ¡°Come on. I¡¯ll take you out on a stroll.¡± Tania did not refuse. Out of Wildridge Manor, Zachary gave Serenity a call. The call was connected, but Serenity would not take the call. Serenity did not reply to his text messages either. She was presently at the Soxes¡¯ residence.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1374 Chapter 1374 Chapter 1374 The Soxes had just had their dinner. Since Serenity was not in the best of moods, Jasmine had a walk with her nearby after dinner. ¡°Seren, I remember you saying that your inws didn¡¯t pressure you to have children. Why are you taking in all the stress?¡± The pair were best friends who could pass as sisters. Jasmine had been there throughout Serenity and Zachary¡¯s journey together. She had never heard about the York family rushing Serenity to have a baby. ¡°They did not pressure me, but I¡¯m worried I might be the problem that I¡¯m not expecting yet.¡± Serenity sighed and added, ¡°No one is giving me pressure, but I can¡¯t help putting the strain on myself. Even if my inws are from an ordinary family, I would be worried about not getting pregnant despite being married for a while. I won¡¯t feel much of it if we have been using protection.¡± Jasmine¡¯s mind flew to the families she knew. The women usually got pregnant soon after the wedding, but most of them had a shotgun wedding now. A woman who had been married for more than six months and trying without protection would stir people to talk behind her back. She could understand what her best friend was going through. ¡°Seren, I haven¡¯t been married. I¡¯ve never experienced this, but I know you can¡¯t put the pressure on yourself. It¡¯s harder to get pregnant if you can¡¯t stop thinking about it. I believe you¡¯re fine. Just free your mind. Dwelling on it isn¡¯t good for you.¡± Serenity let out another sigh. ¡°Jasmine, I¡¯m not upset that I¡¯m not expecting. We fought, and Zachary just left me. The face and tone he gave me really hurt.¡± Wrapping her arm around her best friend¡¯s shoulder, Jasmine gave her assurance. ¡°It¡¯s frustrating and infuriating that Mr. York did that. I¡¯m furious for you. You should stay with me tonight. Don¡¯t go with him right away if hees to pick you up. Let him feel the anxiety. I¡¯ll let my parents know to ignore any commotion out there.¡± ¡°He loves brushing me off when he throws a tantrum. He might be back at the manor now. I don¡¯t expect him toe for me since he¡¯s giving me the cold shoulder,¡± Serenity said tauntingly. ¡°Maybe it¡¯s a good thing. We can cool our heads. I need to reflect to stop being so hard on myself. Come what may. Let¡¯s check out our farming fields tomorrow.¡± Jasmine said with a smile, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll go with you wherever you want to go.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll only take a day out of your busy schedule. Your engagement with Mr. Bucham is up. You won¡¯t have much time. Jasmine, things are going well for you and Mr. Bucham. You might not have a whirlwind romance, but you have realness in the mundane.¡± Jasmine and Josh never had a fight. Josh had a high EQ. He had a good temper, unlike Zachary who was used to thepliance of others. Zachary had tried his best to change for Serenity, but there were times his arrogance as an heir took over. ¡°Seren, your rtionship with Mr. York is strong too. It¡¯s just an asional squabble. It won¡¯t change the way you feel about each other. You can only grow from here.¡± Serenity fell silent for a while before uttering, ¡°Let¡¯s head back. I had a bit too much to drinkst night. My head is hurting since I hadn¡¯t caught up on sleep today.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Jasmine walked home with her best friend and even told her parents to enjoy their sleep in dreand without bothering about what would happen tonight. ¡°Dad, should we release the hounds tonight?¡± Mr. Sox replied, ¡°I don¡¯t keep them on the leash at night.¡± Serenity followed Jasmine upstairs and to Jasmine¡¯s room. ¡°Wear my clothes, Seren. I have a lot of new clothes I haven¡¯t worn. We¡¯re about the same size. My clothes will fit you.¡± Jasmine went to her closet to bring out her new clothes for Serenity. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Seeing that Serenity drew close to the window and pulled the curtain to look down, Jasmine peeked downstairs and said, ¡°My dogs will bark when he arrives.¡± ¡°Will your dogs bite if they¡¯re not on a leash?¡± Jasmine answered with a grin, ¡°We lock the gate at night, so the dogs won¡¯t get out to bite anyone. The most they do is bark. Well, it¡¯s a different story if Mr. York decides to climb the fence.¡± Would Zachary climb over the fence? Chapter 1375 Chapter 1375 Chapter 1375 Ring, ring, ring¡­ Jasmine¡¯s phone rang. She looked at the caller on the disy screen before telling her best friend, ¡°It¡¯s Josh. I think your man might have sought help from Josh. Josh must be calling to ask where you are.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity faintly uttered, ¡°Just ignore him. Does he think he¡¯s the only one with a temper? I have a temper too.¡± Always having Serenity¡¯s back, Jasmine believed her best friend was not in the wrong. Serenity was a confident and cheerful person, but for her to be worried about not being pregnant, the pressure had to somehowe from her man, Zachary. Jasmine felt sorry for her best friend. She wanted to help her best friend give Zachary a taste of his own medicine. Ring, ring, ring¡­ With the phone ringing endlessly, Jasmine had to pick up the call. ¡°What are you busy with, Jasmine? Don¡¯t you miss me? It took you a long time to pick up. I miss you so much. I thought about driving to your ce to check on you if you take any longer to take my call.¡± The perkiness in Josh¡¯s tone was the most moving sweet nothing Jasmine had ever heard. Josh was good to her, and the pair got along well. There had never been a disagreement since they went on a blind date until now. Sometimes, Jasmine thought her love life was going on too smoothly. Now that she had seen the fights her best friend and Zachary got into, and Serenity feeling down and hurt, Jasmine believed it was not a bad idea that she had a in romance with Josh. ¡°I didn¡¯t have my phone with me. I was getting ready to shower when you called. I ran out of the bathroom to take your call. That was why it took some time,¡± Jasmine lied. She added with a smile, ¡°I miss you. I miss you every second of the day. I see you in my dreams every time I go to bed.¡± Josh broke into a smile on the other end of the line. Serenity learned something from listening to the conversation between her best friend and Josh. She was cozy with Zachary, but they were not the kind to sweet¨Ctalk with one another. ¡°Jasmine, can I call you my wife now?¡± Josh lovingly asked. Jasmine replied with a smile, ¡°We¡¯re getting engaged in two days, and the weddinges after the engagement. You won¡¯t be able to get away once we get our marriage license. You¡¯ll belong to me, and me alone. Who are you going to call your wife if not me? I¡¯ll skin you alive and feed you to the dogs if you take someone else as your wife.¡± Chapt 1375 2/2 Josh was quick to give his word. ¡°I¡¯ll only have you in my life. Only you will be my wife. I miss you so much, wifey, but there¡¯s one thing I need to ask you. Is the CEO¡¯s wife with you?¡± Jasmine turned to her best friend. Her guess was right. Zachary would ask Josh for help right off the bat whenever the couple got into a tiff. Josh was Zachary¡¯s love consultant. It did not make sense that Zachary refused to give Josh an extra month of marital leave since Josh worked his *ss off to help Zachary with his rtionship. Jasmine was Josh¡¯s beloved woman indeed. They shared the same thought of getting an extra month off work. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Jasmine replied to Josh with a question instead, with no hurry to answer him. Josh sighed and answered, ¡°Oh, you know my boss. He got into another fight with his wife. It¡¯s just a tiny matter, and yet he made such a huge fuss. Our dear CEO¡¯s wife refuses to take his call or reply to his messages. He panicked when he got home and his wife wasn¡¯t around. He had toe to me for help. ¡°So darling, our CEO¡¯s wife is with you, right?¡± Chapter 1376 Chapter 1376 Chapter 1376 ¡°Oh, you didn¡¯t dig into it?¡± Josh immediately said, ¡°I didn¡¯t because you didn¡¯t like that everything was in my control while you know nothing. I won¡¯t use my connections to investigate if it has anything to do with you. I¡¯m just guessing that Serenity is with you. You guys are bosom buddies. She tells you anything that¡¯s going on in her life.¡± ¡°Seren is with me. Tell Mr. York that Seren is staying with me for the night. She¡¯s not going home for the time being.¡± Josh answered, ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll let him knowter. Is there anything you want to say to me, my dearest wife?¡± ¡°Your boss should serve as a cautionary tale. Don¡¯t learn from him.¡± Josh uttered with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I do the opposite of what he does. I won¡¯t copy the things that he angered his wife with.¡± ¡°You gave me no reason to worry. I love you, Josh. I love you to death!¡± ¡°Me too.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°You better reply to Mr. York before he freaks out. He loves Seren so much, but the little things he does¡­ I¡¯m going to take a shower.¡± Josh could hardly bring himself to put down the phone. He then gave Zachary a call. Once Zachary picked up, Josh uttered, ¡°Your wife stole the love of my life and took time away from me.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll bring her home right now, so she doesn¡¯t take time away from you.¡± Zachary guessed Serenity was at the Soxes¡® residence too. He had asked Aunt Audrey and was sure Serenity was not with her aunt. The only ce left was the Soxes¡® residence. Zachary did not bother to ask Elisa unless he was left with no alternative. ¡°Jasmine told me that your wife will be staying with her for a few days. It¡¯s best if you refrain from disturbing her if it¡¯s nothing important.¡± Zachary tensed his facial muscles. ¡°I am wherever she is. I¡¯ll go and pick up my wife now.¡± He then hung up on Josh. Josh was going to remind Zachary that the Soxes had two vicious hounds. These dogs would usually just bark unless provoked, then they would charge ahead if someone were to break into the property. The Soxes would tie these hounds to a leash during the day, but they were free to roam during the night. Nevertheless, the gate to the yard would be locked, so the dogs would not go out and scare other people. These pets were perfect watchdogs. The Sox family¡¯s neighbors also had dogs as pets. Before Wiltspoon¡¯s rapid growth, the Soxes¡® residence was in a rural area. While the name of the ce was kept, the area the Soxes lived in had developed into a bustling town that could rival a major city. The locals were loaded. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. The Sox family was locals, making money off the rental industry. Nevertheless, the family kept a low profile and lived like an ordinary family. They still had nine¨Cto¨Cfive jobs. After making sure his wife was at the Soxes¡® residence, Zachary informed Jim and the other bodyguards not to follow. He drove himself to the Soxes¡® residence. Despite feeling sleepy, Serenity tossed and turned while keeping an eye on any sudden movements from the dogs in the yard. Knowing what was going on, Jasmine said, ¡°The dogs will bark if and when Zacharyes. Don¡¯t think about him, Seren. Get some sleep. You didn¡¯t sleep wellst night.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not thinking about him. Jasmine, I made up my mind to stay with you for a few days.¡± Serenity refused to admit that the infuriating man upied her mind. Jasmine smiled. ¡°Alright, alright. You¡¯re not thinking about him. Well, sleep then. Stop tossing and turning. You¡¯re like a pancake being flipped on a pan.¡± Chapter 1377 Chapter 1377 Chapter 1377 Serenity turned over and gave Jasmine a light pinch. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll sleep. I¡¯m not flipping pancakes.¡± Jasmine hugged her and offeredforting words. ¡°You¡¯re basically an elderly couple now. Mr. York loves you a lot. It¡¯s just a mimunication. It¡¯ll be over before you know it. Rx and go to bed. You¡¯re able to face another day once you get a good night¡¯s sleep.¡± ¡°I¡¯m so lucky to have you, Jasmine. At least I have someone to talk to when I don¡¯t feel good.¡± ¡°Duh, we go way back. Ie to you when I¡¯m feeling down too. Come on. Let¡¯s sleep. Don¡¯t torture yourself with all those thoughts.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Serenity answered. Her best friend¡¯s assurance soothed Serenity to dreand. It was dark and quiet all around by the time Zachary arrived at the Soxes¡® residence. Everybody was deep in slumbend. He pulled up at the gate of Jasmine¡¯s family home. Zachary parked the car and gave Serenity another call. Since Serenity was asleep, and her phone was on silent mode, she did not take his call. As ast resort, Zachary braved himself to call Jasmine. Awakened by the ringing phone, Jasmine epted the call without looking at the caller ID. ¡°Who is it? Don¡¯t you have a heart? Why are you calling in the middle of the night? I need my beauty sleep even if you don¡¯t. It¡¯s a sin to wake people up.¡± Zachary murmured, ¡°Ms. Sox, it¡¯s me¡­¡± ¡°Who are you? You¡­ Oh, Mr. York?¡± Zachary answered in a husky voice, ¡°Yeah, that¡¯s me.¡± Jasmine tilted her head to nce at her best friend who was beside her. Seeing that her best friend was in deep sleep, Jasmine gently got up and tiptoed to the window. She pulled the curtains open a little to look down. As expected, she saw Zachary¡¯s car at the gate. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you in bed at this hour? What¡¯s the meaning of calling me in the middle of the night?¡± ¡°I¡¯m at the gate of your house.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± ¡°Ms. Sox, is Seren asleep? Can you call her out? I¡¯ll take her home.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Why don¡¯t you look at the time? She¡¯s asleep. Come back in two days. She said she¡¯ll stay with me for a few days. She¡¯ll go home after my engagement party.¡± Zachary took a moment in silence before uttering, ¡°It¡¯s before midnight. Is Seren really asleep, or does she not want to see me?¡± It was still early in Zachary¡¯s books. Nevertheless, to most, it waste at night. ¡°It¡¯s good that you¡¯re aware of that.¡± Zachary fell silent. ¡°Mr. York, I told you what Seren wants. You can either go home or wait here until morning light to see if Seren wants to see you. I¡¯m going to bed. Good night.¡± Jasmine terminated the call before Zachary had a chance to say anything else. She then put her phone on silent. That way, she could hear nothing even if Zachary blew up her phone. Zachary helplessly slipped his phone back into his pocket and lifted his head to look at the Soxes¡® house. There was a glinting from a room on the third floor which Zachary guessed was Jasmine¡¯s bedroom. Judging by Serenity and Jasmine¡¯s friendship, they must be sharing a room. Zachary wanted to shout out loud but was afraid he might wake the others. He stood in front of the gate for a while before checking the surrounding walls of the Soxes¡® residence. They were pretty tall. Although the gate to the yard was high, it was easier to climb over there. Zachary wondered if he should climb the wall and bring Serenity home. Nevertheless, it would make people think he was a thief. He could never show his face in town if word ever got out. In the end, Zachary whipped out his phone once more to call Jasmine. Jasmine did not answer. Nevertheless, she was quick to send him a text message. ¡°Seren doesn¡¯t want to go back with you.¡± Having received the text message from Jasmine, Zachary believed Serenity was still awake. Only, she did not want to take his call or pay him any mind. He decided to climb over the gate to get to her. Chapter 1378 Chapter 1378 Chapter 1378 Zachary believed that Serenity would go home with him so long as he made it inside without bothering the Soxes from their rest. With that in mind, a certain somebody got into action. He had no idea that the Soxes¡® hounds were spying on him in a corner. Zachary climbed up the gate, ready to jump off when he turned and saw two wolfhounds fixating on him. Zachary nearly lost his wits. He knew that the nearby neighbors had dogs. These dogs were barking as he drove past their houses to get to the Soxes¡® residence. However, he had no clue that the Soxes kept dogs. The dogs belonging to the neighbors stopped barking when he pulled up in front of the Soxes¡® residence and the Soxes¡® dogs did not make a sound either. It never urred to him that these hounds were not barkers. The saying was all bark and no bite, but if it were the other way round¡­ These dogs would have ripped him apart if he jumped without turning over to look. Woof! Woof- Seeing that Zachary had no intentions to jump, the hounds started growling at Zachary. Zachary then noticed a lighting onto the Soxes¡® property. He quickly jumped off the other side of the gate and returned to his car uponnding. Leaning against his car, he pretended like nothing ever happened and tried to pull a cigarette out to smoke. Zachary could not find his cigarette pack. He rarely smoked now since Serenity was not keen on the smell of tobo. Zachary did not carry any cigarettes with him. ¡°Who is it, Whiskey?¡± Mrs. Sox¡¯s voice was heard. She came out of the house and turned on the lights in the yard. With the dogs barking toward the gate, she walked down the steps to get a closer look. Zachary approached the gate to the yard and said, ¡°Mrs. Sox, it¡¯s me, Zachary.¡± Mrs. Sox saw him. ¡°Oh, Zachary. It¡¯ste. What brings you here?¡± ¡°I¡¯m here to bring Seren home, Mrs. Sox.¡± Mrs. Sox drew close, but she did not open the gate for Zachary. She said, ¡°Seren said she had a headache, so she slept early. I don¡¯t think we should wake her. Why don¡¯t you juste in the morning?¡± Zachary asked with concern, ¡°Why did Seren have a headache?¡± ¡°She said she had too much to drink at the party and didn¡¯t rest well today.¡± Zachary med himself for that. She was not able to catch up on sleep today because of him. That was why her head hurt. ¡°Mrs. Sox, I see there¡¯s a light in the room on the third floor. Is Seren awake?¡± Mrs. Sox turned around and looked up to the third floor. She answered, ¡°No. That¡¯s Jasmine¡¯s night light. It¡¯s just a slight glimmer.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Zachary remarked. He wanted to pick Serenity up, but Mrs. Sox said Serenity had gone to bed early on. She did not want to wake Serenity. Now that he knew Serenity had a headache, Zachary did not want Mrs. Sox to wake Serenity Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. either. ¡°I¡¯lle by in the morning to bring Seren home, Mrs. Sox.¡± Mrs. Sox replied, ¡°You might want toe early. Jasmine talked about taking Serenity to check on the progress of their investment project first thing in the morning.¡± ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll be here by dawn. Thank you, Mrs. Sox.¡± ¡°You¡¯re wee. Now go home.¡± Mrs. Sox petted the hounds and said, ¡°He¡¯s not a stranger, so stop barking. Go lie down.¡± The hounds obediently turned around and crouched in their corner as they continued to watch the house. Mrs. Sox then turned on her heel and walked back to the house. Chapter 1379 Chapter 1379 Chapter 1379 Zachary watched as Mrs. Sox returned to the house and closed the door behind her. He stood in front of the gate for a while before waltzing back to his car. He sat in silence for a few minutes before starting the engine and driving off. Zachary arrived at the Soxes¡® residence first thing in the morning. The gate to the Sox family¡¯s home was wide open, and the two hounds were tied to a leash. Zachary had a bad feeling that he arrived toote. He pulled up and before he could even get out of the car, Mrs. Sox, who was sweeping the yard, approached him with a broom. ¡°Mr. York, Jasmine and Serenity are out. They went to Liberty¡¯s diner.¡± Zachary asked, ¡°How long have they been gone?¡± ¡°Around twenty minutes. Serenity woke up and said she needed to pick Sonny up from her sister¡¯s, so they left early.¡± Zachary thanked Mrs. Sox and uttered, ¡°I¡¯ll head to my sister¨Cinw¡¯s breakfast ce then.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Mrs. Sox answered. Zachary quickly drove away from the Soxes¡® residence. He dialed Liberty¡¯s number while on the road. Liberty took the call.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Morning, Liberty.¡± ¡°Oh, morning, Zachary. What¡¯s the matter? You must be looking for Seren. Seren and Jasmine are having breakfast here.¡± Liberty had no idea that the couple had another argument. Since she was busy, Liberty handed the phone to her sister and said, ¡°It¡¯s Zachary.¡± Now that the phone was with Serenity, Liberty was back to working mode. Serenity was tempted to hang up, but Zachary cried out anxiously on the other end of the line, Please don¡¯t hang up, honey. I know it¡¯s my fault. I¡¯m to me for everything. I shouldn¡¯t have left you alone and gone off on my own. It¡¯s all my fault.¡± She listened without a word. ¡°Don¡¯t ignore me, honey. Please don¡¯t avoid me, okay? Don¡¯t leave yet. We can have a good talk. I can go with you if you want to check on the progress of your project.¡± Serenity finally broke her silence, talking in a t tone, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t dare ask the great Mr. York to keep mepany since he¡¯s busy.¡± ¡°I¡¯m sorry, honey.¡± His wife¡¯s sarcastic remarks prompted Zachary to apologize. ¡°Be careful on the road. I¡¯m having my breakfast,¡± Serenity faintly uttered before ending the call. She returned the phone to her sister. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡± Liberty asked her sister amid cooking for the customers. ¡°My phone was put on silentst night. He panicked because he couldn¡¯t get in touch with me, so he called you instead.¡± Serenity pulled out her phone to cancel the silent mode. ¡°Why did you put your phone on silent out of the blue? You can carry on with your workter. No need to look after Sonny. The boy starts his lesson at the gym today.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± It slipped Serenity¡¯s mind that Zachary made arrangements for her nephew to learn and defend himself. Zachary riled her up so much that her memory was failing her. Jim was responsible for Sonny¡¯s pick¨Cup and drop¨Coff at William¡¯s gym. Serenity left before Zachary arrived at the diner. Along with Jasmine and Elisa, they headed to her hometown together. Prior to leaving, she sent Zachary a text message. ¡°Home for dinner tonight.¡± This was her giving in to the fight. There was a difference between loving and not loving someone. The couple would engage in giving each other the cold shoulder without backing down when they were not in love. Serenity thought nothing of their quarrels back then. Now that they had feelings for each other, they missed one another like crazy from just being a night away. He freaked out, and she felt bad. Having received his wife¡¯s message, Zachary went straight to the office instead of going to his sister¨C inw¡¯s diner. Zachary ran into his future sister¨Cinw, Camryn, at the entrance of the office building. Camryn was holding a cane in one hand and a bouquet in another. It appeared she was here to deliver flowers to Callum. Picking up on steady footsteps, Camryn stopped in her tracks. Chapter 1380 Chapter 1380 Chapter 1380 Facing Zachary, Camryn probingly said hello, ¡°Is that Mr. York?¡± There was a glimmer in Zachary¡¯s dark eyes. The girl could determine the person by their footsteps. ¡°Ms. Camryn.¡± Zachary greeted back in a low voice, ¡°Are you here to deliver flowers to Callum, Ms. Camryn?¡± Camryn nodded with a smile. ¡°Mr. Callum ordered a bouquet from my shop. He asked me to make the delivery right now.¡± Zachary asked, ¡°Did youe here on your own?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Zachary believed Callum was on his way to his own undoing. He knew Camryn could not see, and yet he expected Camryn to deliver the flowers all by herself. Nevertheless, Zachary said nothing. This was Callum¡¯s business. Zachary could stay out of it and observe from the sidelines. ¡°Do you need help to get upstairs?¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Zachary. That won¡¯t be necessary.¡± She remembered the route as she had been here twice. Camryn could get to Callum¡¯s office without guidance. Without another word, Zachary went ahead into the office building. With Zachary¡¯s footsteps fading, Camryn took her time to head inside. The two receptionists greeted her, and Camryn returned them a smile. Ten minutester, Camryn stood outside Callum¡¯s office and raised her hand to knock on the door. There was no response on the other side of the door. She waited in silence for a bit before knocking on the door once more. The door swung open. Standing in front of Camryn, Callum looked at her. ¡°Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn presented Callum with the bouquet and uttered with a smile, ¡°Here are the flowers you ordered. That will be three hundred bucks.¡± Instead of taking the flowers, Callum turned around and walked inside while telling Camryn,¡± Come in.¡± Camryn was quiet for a moment before following Callum into the office. ¡°Shut the door if you can.¡± Camryn felt around for the door handle and closed the door for him. ¡°Come and take a seat.¡± Callum drew close to the sofa and sat down. He told Camryn toe over.Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Camryn determined the direction from the sound of Callum¡¯s voice until she felt the back of the sofa. She slowly ran her fingers along the sofa to find a seat when suddenly, she felt a warm sensation on the touch. It was Callum¡¯s hand. She recoiled her arms. ¡°Are you trying to take advantage of me?¡± With a hot breath closing in, Callum¡¯s shameless words prated Camryn¡¯s eardrums. Camryn answered, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mr. Callum. It was an ident. I can only apologize if you think that I¡¯m taking advantage of you.¡± Out of the blue, Callum gently grabbed her by the chin and plucked her face up to get a better view of her features. Camryn was calm throughout, neither flustered nor screaming as Callum inspected her face. Soon, Callum let out and removed her sunsses. He said, ¡°Yesterday afternoon, your dad¨Chang on¨C your uncle contacted me. He said I saved you and witnessed your most vulnerable moment when you were nearly humiliated.¡± He stopped talking at that point. Camryn felt her way to the sofa and sat down. She then put the bouquet on the coffee table. ¡°He wants you to marry me, right?¡± ¡°So they told you?¡± Callum asked. Truth be told, Mr. Newman beat around the bush, but that was what he was hinting at. Callum was tempted tough. The thing suggested by Mr. Newman was right up Callum¡¯s alley. Chapter 1381 Chapter 1381 Chapter 1381 ¡°No.¡± Camryn faintly added. ¡°I¡¯m never included in whatever discussion they have.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. She picked up her cane. Her cane had been lying in her mother¡¯s bedroom since thetter kicked it away the other night. The following day, the maid returned the cane to Camryn. Camryn was told that the cane was found in front of her mother¡¯s bedroom door. She assumed that her mother had thrown her cane out. Camryn handed the cane to Callum. Thinking Camryn was going to hit him on the head with the cane, Callum reached out to grab the cane. However, Camryn loosened her grip. It then hit Callum. She was trying to pass the cane to him. ¡°The inside of my cane is hollow. A voice recorder is hidden inside,¡± said Camryn in an unfluctuating tone. Callum¡¯s dark eyes sparkled as his opinion of her began to change. He stopped the teasing. He held the cane high for a look and flicked on the wood. He managed to pry open a hollow spot and shake it to deliver a voice recorder from inside. ¡°The vi is meant to be mine, but I still don¡¯t have control of my house. It¡¯s not a safe ce despite it being my home. Although Spring Blossoms is my business, the iing and outgoing human traffic makes it risky. I thought about it, and I believe the safest ce is with you.¡± That was the reason Camryn had noints and came here with her cane when Callum called her to make the floral delivery. She chose to be truthful to Callum, disying her taking the first step in trusting him. No matter what, Callum had saved her life before. She believed she could count on him. Regardless of Callum¡¯s reasons to approach her, he was one of the two she could trust. The other person she had trust in was Serenity. ¡°What did you capture on tape? ¡°How long did you have the voice recorder in the cane for?¡± Camryn fell silent for a while before answering, ¡°I secretly hid the voice recorder in the cane when she wanted to take me to the event. I don¡¯t know what¡¯s recorded on tape because I haven¡¯t got the guts to take the recorder out at home and in the shop.¡± Callum fixated his gaze on tier for a long time until a question popped out. ¡°What do you know?¡± ¡°I just think my dad died under suspicious circumstances, but he passed when I was only two. I didn¡¯t know anything until I overheard something. I wanted to collect evidence in the dark, but I fell ill before anything materialized. I was blind after that.¡± Without a word, Callum turned on the voice recorder. It started with a conversation between the mother and daughter. Mrs. Newman was tearing into Camryn. The talk between Mr. Newman and Mrs. Newmanter came on. It was on the night after the event was over when Callum saved and drove Camryn home. The couple had no scruples talking in the privacy of their room. Mrs. Newman mentioned that the master bedroom was soundproof, so unless there was someone hiding in their bedroom, no one could listen to their conversation within the four walls. The couple¡¯s conversation was recorded merely because Mrs. Newman kicked Camryn¡¯s cane in her bedroom. After listening to what was caught on tape, Camryn turned pale. Her suspicion from ten years ago was true. They had something to do with her father¡¯s death! Chapter 1382 Chapter 1382 Chapter 1382 Mr. and Mrs. Newman wanted to wipe Camryn off the face of the earth because she was suspicious about her father¡¯s death. Camryn was a nobody in the Newmans¡¯ residence anyway. No one would bother investigating her cause of death even if Camryn had a terminal illness. Camryn would have died in her mother¡¯s hands ten years ago if her aunt did not drop in for a visit and taken Camryn to the hospital. Of course, Callum and Camryn heard about Mr. and Mrs. Newman¡¯s talks about getting Callum to marry Camryn. Callum watched as Camryn sat in silence. Camryn sped her hands together without a word for a long time. Although she had suspected her father¡¯s death had to do with Mr. and Mrs. Newman, it was all spection she made in her head as there was no proof. Now that she got it from the horses¡¯ mouths, her mind was nk, and her limbs felt cold. Camryn could not wrap her head around why her father¡¯s wife and brother would want him dead. Had the affair between Mr. and Mrs. Newman been going on from the start? Her mother could have opted for a divorce if there was cheating involved. ¡°What do you n on doing?¡± Callum suddenly asked. Unable to bear the discoloration on her face, Callum went to pour her a ss of water. Camryn downed the drink. ¡°Mr. Callum, do you think the voice recording is enough to nail them?¡± Callum replied, ¡°It¡¯s hard because they can argue and say it was said out of rage. They can question the validity of your voice recording, but it will be the smoking gun when paired with other evidence. Do you have anything else on them?¡± Camryn shook her head. She was only two when her father died. What would she know? As far as she could remember, her childhood was filled with abuse from her mother and sister, as well as confusion. It was beyond Camryn why her mother could not love her even though she was her mother¡¯s daughter too. Mrs. Newman never held her or spoke tenderly to her. Camryn gradually grew numb, no longer pining for her mother¡¯s love. All she wanted to do was study and leave the home once she was able to. Exclusive ? content by N(?)ve/l/Drama.Org. Camryn would never have suspected a thing if it were not for the rumor that her father died an unnatural death. It then dawned on her why her mother could not love her. It prompted Camryn to dig further and collect evidence. s, she was too hasty back then. Camryn was only sixteen at the time, and her mother and stepfather had her in the palm of their hands. It was reckless to think she could go behind their backs. They really put a hit on her. Maybe it was a good thing Camryn lost her sight. It did not matter that the hospital saved her because she would not survive if her aunt did not take her away. Her aunt wanted to, but her mom refused. The wicked woman said the aunt was out of line to try and rece Mrs. Newman¡¯s role as a mother. Camryn had to be a blind nobody since she could not leave the house. ¡°I don¡¯t have other proof.¡± Camryn uttered in a soft voice, ¡°I tried to collect evidence ten years ago, and it came at the cost of my sight. I found nothing in return. All I felt was their cruelty. ¡°Serenity told me that my priority is getting my eyesight back. I can continue to find proof once I can see again. Serenity is suggesting not to let my family know when I can see.¡± The handicap of being blind was a convenience to collect evidence. ¡°Can you see again with a corneal transnt?¡± ¡°My blindness is caused by drugs. My aunt took me for an examination before, and the doctor mentioned that a corneal transnt wouldn¡¯t show much effect. I had a lot of doctors examine me, but only one whose treatment was working. Nevertheless, the doctor passed away. I can only see a bit of light, but everything else is still a blur.¡± Chapter 1383 Chapter 1383 Chapter 1383 Callum looked into Camryn¡¯s eyes for a while before uttering, ¡°Serenity is right. You should get your eyes fixed first if you want to collect evidence. I¡¯ll keep the voice recorder safe for you here so it doesn¡¯t fall into their hands. It¡¯ll only put you in danger.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn never thought about asking for the voice recorder back. As Callum put it, Camryn might lose her life over the voice recorder. ¡°I¡¯m going to y along if they n on using me to save that sister of yours. Do you have a problem with that?¡± Camryn looked confused. ¡°What do you mean by ¡®y along¡±?¡± ¡°Your stepfather wants me to marry you. They must think I¡¯m not for it and will use it as leverage to get your sister out of jail. Well, they have another thinging.¡± Callum was a proud member of the York family. He was not one to be messed with. Mr. and Mrs. Newman must be desperate to try anything. They adored Carrie so much. ¡°What do you think about me marrying you?¡± ¡°Huh?¡± Camryn was stunned. ¡°It¡¯s hard to collect evidence on your own. I can get easy ess in and out of the Newmans¡¯ residence when I marry you and be part of the family. That way, I can help you gather proof. One day, they will be brought to justice, and I can avenge my father-inw.¡± Callum believed his father-inw must be rolling over in his grave since thetter¡¯s brother slept with his wife and abused his daughter. One night, his father-inw woulde back to haunt Mr. Newman. As the son-inw, Callum had the duty to help in avenging his father-inw. Camryn was speechless. She was at a total loss for words. Meanwhile, it was soon closing time at Liberty¡¯s diner at around ten o¡¯clock; time to tidy up. After thest batch of customers left, Liberty and her two employees cleaned up the ce. While she was busy, her clingy ex-husband appeared on site. Hank was with Jessica as always. With their wedding date around the corner, Hank and Jessica showed up together unless Hank was out driving an Uber. ¡°Liberty, where¡¯s Sonny?¡± It was the first thing Hank asked when he stepped into the diner. ¡°I want to take Sonny to try out a suit,¡± Hank stated his intention. Liberty stopped wiping down the stove and gazed up at her ex-husband. She faintly said, ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you Sonny¡¯s size? You can rent him a tux or get him a new one with the size.¡± There was no need to take Sonny with him. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. She gave Jessica a few nces. Jessica had no qualms jumping in, ¡°Sonny should pick what he likes, Liberty. Our taste as adults might be different than the kids¡¯.¡± She added, ¡°Hank and I are just taking Sonny out to try on some clothes. We¡¯ll deliver Sonny right back to you after that. You¡¯re cleaning up. We¡¯ll be back around the same time you¡¯re done. ¡°It doesn¡¯t take long. The formal wear rental ce isn¡¯t far from here. It¡¯s a ten-minute drive.¡± Echoing his wife¡¯s thoughts, Hank said, ¡°Are you trying to take time away from me and Sonny, Liberty? Sonny is my son too. We had an agreement that I can meet with Sonny whenever I want. ¡°I¡¯m not saying I won¡¯t bring Sonny back. He¡¯s only going to pick an outfit as the flower boy. Didn¡¯t you talk to Sonny about it? I¡¯ll talk to him if you haven¡¯t. There¡¯s nothing I can¡¯t share with my son. ¡°You¡¯re refusing visitation if you¡¯re not letting me take Sonny for a fitting. It¡¯s a vition of the agreement. I can go to court and fight for Sonny¡¯s custody.¡± Even though there was a possibility Hank could not win, he was d so long as he could annoy and drive Liberty crazy. Chapter 1384 Chapter 1384 Chapter 1384 Hank¡¯s mental state was heading in an unhealthy direction as things got better for Liberty in life. He could not help but make Liberty jump through hoops. For example, Hank could buy a mini suit for their son, but with Jessica egging him on, Hank believed Liberty was deliberately driving a wedge between him and his son. Liberty refused to let him see his son. Hence, Hank insisted on taking Sonny to try out clothes. He made a huge fuss the moment Liberty disagreed with him. ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny? Where did you hide him?¡± Hank looked around the breakfast diner, but his son was nowhere to be found. ¡°Did you hide Sonny at Serenity¡¯s ce?¡± That was not right. Serenity¡¯s bookshop was closed for two days. He had been to the bookshop. ¡°Sonny is in a ss. He¡¯ll be back soon.¡± Liberty faintly added, ¡°I¡¯m not stopping you from meeting with Sonny, Hank. If you really want to take Sonny along, then fine. I¡¯m almost done anyway. I¡¯ll go with you when Sonny is finished with his ss.¡± Jessica quietly gave Hank a tug, stopping Hank from giving his further two cents. Jessica uttered, ¡°Are you sure you want to go, Liberty? I have not picked my wedding gown. I might need. your opinion on a few things.¡± She wanted Liberty to witness her being Hank¡¯s beautiful bride in a lovely white dress. It would only upset Liberty. ¡°I only care about my son.¡± Liberty could not be bothered to give Jessica the time of day. It was not hard to guess what was on Jessica¡¯s mind, and it amused Liberty to no end. Liberty made a great decision to divorce a man like Hank at the earliest possible. It was not as though Jessica was in the dark about Hank and the Browns¡¯ qualities. Still, she was determined to have a wedding with Hank. Well, she would regret it someday. ¡°What sort of ss is Sonny taking? Did you enroll him in a kindergarten already?¡± Hank questioned. Liberty continued cleaning. ¡°Zachary hired a self-defense instructor for Sonny. He¡¯s learning the basics in the gym. His kindergarten will start in September.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Who¡¯s paying?¡± Hank believed that it was wise for boys to learn how to fight. All that mattered to him was the person footing the bill. Liberty did not cast him a nce. ¡°Not you anyway.¡± ¡°I only cover the child support, and I paid you a year in advance. You agreed that you won¡¯t seek me for other expenses. I¡¯m not paying, and I¡¯m putting my foot down.¡± Business as an Uber driver was slow. It could not bepared to the quick bucks he earned from his side job when he was a manager. Now that his ie was low, Hank attached a lot of importance to money. Besides, he had a wedding and honeymooning up. Both asions required a lot of money. If only he had more. It was a good thing Jessica was hell-bent on spending the rest of her life with him. Hank saved a lot for the financial gift to her parents. Hank pulled Jessica to sit down at a table as they waited for his son¡¯s return. They could then bring his son to try out a suit. As for Liberty tagging along, she was free to do so. He was curious about Liberty¡¯s expression when she saw his new bride trying out wedding gowns. Liberty was only going for the safety of her son. She did not think Hank would do anything to her son, but Jessica was a suspect. Liberty did not feel easy leaving Sonny alone with the couple. Who knew if anything were to happen? Paying no attention to the couple, Liberty cleaned the ce up and was about to remove her apron when Jim arrived to drop Sonny off. Chapter 1385 Chapter 1385 Chapter 1385 ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny came running in his gym uniform. ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re back.¡± With a smile, Liberty went up and picked her son up. ¡°How was it? Do you feel tired? Did you cry?¡± Sonny shook his head. ¡°I didn¡¯t cry, but I do feel tired.¡± ¡°Oh, you¡¯re tired. Let me kiss your tiredness away. You must stick to the sses.¡± Liberty was concerned that her son could not keep up with the workout. She gave her son a kiss and reminded him to hang on so as not to disappoint Zachary after all he did for Sonny. Sonny was exhausted and tempted to quit, but his uncle¡¯s words were imprinted in his mind. By taking up the art of self-defense, he no longer had to be afraid of bad guys. He could also protect his mother. He wanted to be the manly man and shield his mom from all harm. Sonny gave a firm nod. ¡°I will stick to the ss, Mom.¡± Jim entered the diner too. ¡°Ms. Hunt.¡± He said hello to Liberty. ¡°Thank you, Jim.¡± Jim smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t mention it, Ms. Hunt.¡± It was his duty to drop off and pick up Sonny from the lessons. Seeing that Hank and his wife were in the diner, Jim¡¯s internal rm bells were ringing. He could report back to duty with Mr. Zachary after sending Sonny back, but now he was no longer in a rush to leave- he had to keep an eye on Hank and Jessica. ¡°Sonny.¡± Hank got up and approached the boy. He smiled and put his hands out toward his son. ¡°Come and give me a hug, Sonny.¡± Liberty put her son down. Hank then scooped Sonny in his arms. ¡°Are you here to see me, Dad? I went to a ss today, and William taught me how to fight. I took the lesson seriously, but it was so tiring.¡± It tickled Hank that the little man acted like a mini adult. WYNONN The fact that his son loved to cry was the only thing that stuck in his mind in the past. Sonny¡¯s cries annoyed Hank. Oh, Sonny used to throw his toys around the house too. Now that his son was getting older and more sensible, Hank finally saw the cuteness and wit in Sonny. He had thoughts of getting Sonny¡¯s custody now. On second thought, Hank gave up on the idea. Sonny would benefit a lot from Serenity and her husband if Sonny was left with Liberty. Hank bet that Serenity and her husband would not give a lot to Sonny should Hank have custody of the boy. It was not worthwhile. Although Liberty got full custody of Sonny, Hank would always remain Sonny¡¯s father. This would never change. The bond between father and son would not go so long as Hank came often to spend time with Sonny. Sonny would not forget his father when he was all grown up and made it big in the world. Hankplimented Sonny. Jessica came over to y with Sonny. Nevertheless, Sonny merely nced at Jessica without saying a word to her. The little guy had no idea why his parents were separated, but he did not like Jessica. Although the lady may be nice and kind to him, Sonny could not take to her. He had a feeling that her kindness was fake. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. She got nothing on scary Dunc. Dunc looked mean but had the kindest heart. ¡°Sonny, I¡¯m about to have a wedding with Jessica. Can you be our flower boy?¡± Hank asked. Confused, Sonny asked, ¡°What¡¯s a flower boy, Dad?¡± Hank exined to Sonny. Sonny turned to his mother and asked, ¡°Can I be Dad¡¯s flower boy, Mom?¡± Chapter 1386 Chapter 1386 Chapter 1386 ¡°It¡¯s up to you whether you want to do it. Don¡¯t be scared to speak your mind if you don¡¯t want to.¡± Liberty did not want to force her son. She respected his choices. Tilting his head, Sonny looked at his dad and contemted for a while before asking, ¡°Is my mom going?¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°Yes. Didn¡¯t I give your mom an invitation thest time?¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Sonny bobbed his head. ¡°Okay, Dad. I¡¯ll do it.¡± Hank smiled. He knew his son was close to him and would be happy to be his flower boy. ¡°Should we go pick an outfit then?¡± Sonny turned to his mother once more. Hank had to tell Liberty, ¡°We should hurry if you want toe along.¡± Paying Hank no mind, Liberty turned off the electricity and checked if the stove was off. With all that confirmed, she let the two workers knock off and said to Jim, ¡°Jim, you can return. I¡¯m going with Sonny to pick out a suit for him.¡± Sonny had his lesson in the morning. The ss in the afternoon was not necessary. He was young, so William did not want to take a full day of training from the get-go. Sonny might. not be able to take it and would give up in tears. Just a step at a time. Although Sonny was not endowed with the qualities of a natural fighter, he could earn enough skills to protect himself if he persisted in the training. Since Liberty was tagging along on the trip, Jim was relieved. He then took off. Jessica was d that Liberty and her son would be without security. The n today could go on with a chance of sess. Liberty closed the diner and took her son from her ex-husband. She faintly said, ¡°You and your wife can lead us in the front. I¡¯ll drive with Sonny in the back.¡± Hank took notice of a car parked outside the diner when he arrived. He thought it belonged to someone else. It was only now he realized it was Liberty¡¯s. ¡°When did you get a new car?¡± ¡°Two days ago.¡± Hank stole a few nces at Liberty¡¯s new ride. He felt better, knowing it was the cheap type. He would probably turn green with envy if Liberty drove a car worth several hundred thousand dors. As per Liberty¡¯s instruction, Hank led the drive with Liberty following behind him in another vehicle. Duncan, Zachary, and Josh received the news when Liberty and her son set out with Hank and his wife. Clive was a tad slow in getting the update. They had informed their people to follow Liberty and Sonny in the dark to protect them. Josh informed Julian too. They were ready to make a clean sweep of Mrs. Newman¡¯s connections and power lurking in the darkness. Liberty had no idea of the ensuing danger. She believed Jessica would not have the chance to try anything since they were in a bustling city. Plus, she was with her son. She would not let her son out of her sight. They arrived at the bridal shop picked by Hank and Jessica. The two vehicles gradually came to a stop. Hank parked and got out of the car to watch Liberty park. Seeing that she was steady behind the wheel, Hank did not offer to help. He was in a trance. In the past, Liberty would ask Hank for help with everything. She was dependent on him. Now, Liberty could do everything herself. She was an independent woman. It was not like she could no longer survive away from Hank. On the contrary, she was doing well after leaving Hank. She lost weight, regained the beauty she had before their marriage, opened a diner, enjoyed a growing business, and bought a car. Life was only going to get better for her. It probably would not take long before Liberty would get her first property in Wiltspoon. It could be a vi too. Mrs. York was her sister. Of course, Serenity would help out a little if Liberty wanted to get a house. Hank¡¯s mind flew back to his parents¡¯ and sister¡¯s words. Liberty was now out of his league. One day, he would regret divorcing Liberty. Chapter 1387 Chapter 1387 Chapter 1387 Hank regretted it. In fact, the regret sank in a long time ago. He realized life was not as good as he thought since he went public about his rtionship with Jessica. He was disappointed with his decision. This was especially when his family nitpicked and fought with Jessica endlessly. It was annoying. He was having more than second thoughts. It was all the same, going from a lover to a wife. Had he been nice to Liberty, gotten her on a weight loss program, and given her time to dress up, his wife would not have lost to his lover¡­ ¡°Why are you staring into nk space, babe?¡± With Hank¡¯s eyes on Liberty, Jessica nudged him and brought him back to earth. ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± Hank had no guts to admit he was dwelling in the past and regretted his choices as Jessica would jump down his throat. He had his pride. He did not want a public fallout. It would only let Liberty see him as aplete joke. Hank drew close and carried his son out of the car. Once Liberty got out, he put Sonny down and took Sonny by the hand. Hank said to Liberty, ¡°This is the bridal shop.¡± Liberty took a look without making anyment. She remembered the bridal shop as she and Hank rented their wedding outfits at the same ce for their wedding too. Jessica sure loved topete with her in everything. Liberty smirked to herself. How unconfident Jessica must be to do so? Jessica could not stand seeing Hank and Liberty walking together. They were also holding Sonny¡¯s hand like one happy family. It did not sit well with Jessica that Hank and Liberty were once family either. She took quick paces over and stood next to Liberty, pushing Liberty to the side. Jessica intimately held Hank¡¯s arm. Liberty found it amusing. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. She was about to walk around and hold her son¡¯s other hand. A tall man in ck clothes and a ck mask dashed out of nowhere and bent over to take Sonny from Hank. Too surprised to react, Hank watched as the man took off with Sonny. ¡°Sonny.¡± Liberty acted the fastest, going after the man right away. ¡°Sonny.¡± Snapping out of his trance, Hank shook off Jessica¡¯s grasp and pursued the man who took Sonny. ¡°Kidnap! Kidnap!¡± Liberty yelled as she ran. The passersby on the street swiftly gathered around following Liberty¡¯s cries, but they were not there to stop the kidnapper. Instead, these people came in Liberty¡¯s way, refusing to let her pursue the man in ck. It hit Liberty that the passersby were aplices of the man in ck. Using her slight plump build, Liberty rammed away those in her path as she tried to keep up with. the kidnapper. ¡°Mom! Mom¡­¡± Sonny screamed at Liberty. Liberty ran with all her might. Since she took up running to lose weight, Liberty could run fast and up her stamina. She could not bring herself to stop even if she was out of breath. She was afraid this was thest time she would ever see her son if she stopped here and now. The man in ck raced ahead, trying to shake Liberty off his tail. He took the winding alleyways to lose Liberty. Nevertheless, he could not get Liberty off his tail. ¡°Mom! Mom!¡± Chapter 1388 Chapter 1388 Chapter 1388 Sonny cried as he put up a fight to break free from the man¡¯s locked arms. The boy even kicked the man. It was a shame Sonny¡¯s limited strength was merely a scratch to the big man. It was useless. Seeing that his kicking did not work, Sonny suddenly pped the man¡¯s eyes. Now, he got a reaction. The man in ck could not see as Sonny smacked and pped his eyes. The man staggered in his footsteps and could not keep up the speed. Liberty gave everything she got to pick up her pace. Ten meters, five meters, one meter¡­. Frustrated, the man in ck was about to knock Sonny unconscious when Liberty charged up and pounced on him. She got Sonny back, but she tumbled onto the ground. Despite falling down, she kept her son tightly wrapped in her embrace. Sonny remained on top of his mother during the fall. The only thing a mother could think of was protecting her child in a moment of danger. Not wanting his effort to go in vain, the man in ck came to snatch Sonny when Liberty fell. There was no way Liberty would let go. She locked Sonny in a tight grip while Sonny pped away the man¡¯s hands, refusing to let the man take him. Sonny even tried to bite the man. A flurry of footsteps was drawing close. Many had chased their way here. The man in ck noticed that some of the people were hispanions, but the majority were highly- trained security personnel. ¡°Run! Take the child and run!¡± Hispanions yelled at him. Anxious, the man in ck tried to grab Sonny, but Liberty would not release her grip on her son. The man saw rage and started kicking Liberty. Despite being in agony, Liberty would not let go all the same. She would not let go of Sonny even at the cost of death. ¡°Don¡¯t hit my mom! Don¡¯t hit my mom!¡± Sonny wanted to protect his mother, but he was too little. Since his mother clutched him tightly against her, there was nothing he could do. Seeing that his kicking was not enough to loosen Liberty¡¯s grip, the man pulled out a knife and unsheathed it before cutting into Liberty¡¯s arm. Liberty felt a stabbing pain in her arm as blood spilled and quickly stained her clothes. The pain was not enough reason for Liberty to let go either. Losing his temper, the man randomly stabbed Liberty again and again¡­ Liberty stayed down as she shielded her son who was now under her. The blood-stained knife shed her body. After two or three gashes, someone kicked the knife out of the man¡¯s hand. The man made ast- ditch effort to fight, but he was soon beaten to a pulp and groaning on the ground. ¡°Ms. Hunt!¡± The bodyguard, responsible for protecting Liberty and Sonny in the dark, was shocked to discover Liberty in blood. ¡°Sonny¡­¡± Color drained from Liberty¡¯splexion due to the blood loss. Her vision became blurry, but she and her son were safe now as Zachary¡¯s men had arrived¡­. She let go of her son and fell to the side. cking out, Liberty let the darkness swallow her as a whole. ¡°Ms. Hunt!¡± ¡°Mom! Mom!¡± Scared stiff, Sonny kept pushing his mother, but his mom remained still. With blood gushing out of his mother, Sonny tried to wipe away the blood in a fluster. Yet, blood kepting out. He tried to cover his mother¡¯s injuries with his hands, but Mom had more than one cut. Sonny did not have enough hands for all the injuries. ¡°Mom!¡± Sonny burst into tears. His hands and body were tainted with his mother¡¯s blood. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. The York family¡¯s bodyguard wasted no time calling 911. The police siren ensued. Thepanions of the man in ck scattered and fled. Hank, who finally caught up, was out of breath. He was about to sigh at his son¡¯s presence, but the gory scene made his knees weak. He stumbled his way ahead to carry Liberty to the hospital. Chapter 1389 Chapter 1389 Chapter 1389 For some reason-probably tired from running or scared stiff-Hank lost all energy and could not This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. pick Liberty up. ¡°Don¡¯t move Ms. Hunt!¡± The York family¡¯s bodyguard pushed Hank away to prevent him from moving Liberty as it might cause Liberty to bleed out.. After calling the emergency line, the bodyguard tried to stop the bleeding and contact Zachary and the others too. Having found out that his sister-inw was stabbed multiple times, Zachary shouted, ¡°How could you allow Liberty to get hurt when there were so many of you watching her?¡± How was he supposed to exin to Seren? The bodyguards remained without a word. They had a lot of eyes on Liberty and Sonny, but so did the other party too. The security team was minutes away from catching up to Liberty, and it was in those minutes. Liberty was stabbed. The nearest ambnce was sent to the scene. Liberty was rushed to the hospital for treatment. ¡°Mom¡­¡± Sonny sobbed and wailed. He was covered in blood-his mother¡¯s blood. ¡°Sonny.¡± Hank med himself. Why did he not carry his son back then? Sonny would not be snatched out of his hands, and Liberty would not be stabbed to save her son if he carried his son into the bridal shop. If anything were to happen to Liberty¡­ Hank did not dare to imagine the consequences. She would turn out okay! Liberty was a good person. God would favor her and keep her from harm. With his son in his arms, Hank got into the ambnce. The paramedics hurried to stop the bleeding. Even though the cuts missed her vitals, they had to stop Liberty from bleeding out. Seeing that Sonny was covered in blood, a paramedic wanted to bandage Sonny, thinking he was hurt. ¡°It¡¯s Mom¡¯s blood,¡± Sonny uttered in between sobs. The paramedic picked him up and examined him to make sure he was unharmed. The paramedic had the utmost respect for the unconscious Liberty. Liberty, as a mother, was willing to protect her child at the cost of her life. The man in ck stabbed and kicked Liberty until her internal organs were damaged. Nevertheless, Liberty never let go of her son. She only loosened her grip when it was finally safe. A female paramedic secretly shed tears. Hank carried her son and fixated on Liberty. He dared not breathe out loud or ask questions so as not to distract the paramedics from providing first aid to Liberty. They arrived at the hospital in mere minutes. Liberty was sent straight into the emergency room. With Sonny in his arms, Hank waited outside the emergency room. Duncan¡¯s men and the York family¡¯s bodyguards were also there. Josh¡¯s people were cooperating with the police to catch the offenders. ¡°Dad, will Mom die?¡± Sonny asked Hank in fear. His eyes were swollen from crying. Hank immediately replied, ¡°No. Your mom won¡¯t die. She¡¯s a good person. A good person lives up to a hundred. She won¡¯t die. She won¡¯t.¡± He consoled his son and himself. It took a while before it struck him to make a call. Sonny snatched Hank¡¯s phone when thetter pulled out his phone. Having kept his aunt¡¯s number in mind, Sonny gave Serenity a call. Hank watched on without stopping him. There was no telling if Liberty would survive this. Serenity was Liberty¡¯s only sister. It was best to inform Serenity to get here quickly in case Liberty could not be saved. Serenity might be able to see Liberty onest time. Chapter 1390 Chapter 1390 Chapter 1390 ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity was at a town near her hometown, checking on the progress of her project when she picked up the call. Thinking that it was her sister, Serenity said hello with a smile. Zachary also dialed Serenity¡¯s number while on his way to the hospital, but Sonny was one step ahead of him. His call did not go through. ¡°Aunt Ser¡­¡± Sonny burst out crying at the sound of his aunt¡¯s voice. Serenity tried to calm her nephew down. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Sonny? Why are you crying? Was the lesson tiring? Don¡¯t cry. Don¡¯t cry. Sonny is a man, and men don¡¯t cry. Don¡¯t cry, Sonny. I¡¯ll take you to the supermarketter. I¡¯ll get you whatever you want.¡± ¡°Aunt Ser, Mom was bleeding. There was a lot of blood¡­ Come back, Aunt Ser. Mom¡¯s about to die Wahhh!¡± Sonny¡¯s voice trailed on and off amid the wailing. On the other end of the line, Serenity was in shock. The phone fell right out of her hand. Next to Serenity, Elisa bent over to pick up the phone. Serenity managed to grab the phone and yelled at her nephew on the other end. ¡°What did you say, Sonny? Can you make it clear? What happened to your mom? Sonny! Sonny! Say something, Sonny!¡± All Sonny did was cry. Hank immediately took over the phone and said, ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s bad. Someone tried to kidnap. Sonny again. Your sister was stabbed while protecting Sonny. She¡¯s in the emergency room right now. Where are you? Come back now. What if your sister¡­ You might be able to see her onest time.¡± Serenity¡¯s phone crashed onto the floor once more. She felt a shiver under her skin, and then the world turned upside down. She could barely stand up. ¡°Seren.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Seren?¡± Jasmine and Elisa quickly helped her up. ¡°My sister¡­¡± No words could go past Serenity¡¯s lips. ¡°What happened to your sister?¡± Elisa asked, concerned and anxious. ¡°Go¡­ Go! Go back!¡± It took everything in Serenity to scream these words. She needed to go back. Why did she have to travel far to her hometown today? Why could she not stay with her sister and nephew? ¡°Okay, okay. Let¡¯s head back. We¡¯ll go back now. Don¡¯t panic, Seren. It¡¯s okay. Everything is okay.¡± Elisa soothed her as she and Jasmine propped Serenity up. They hurried to their parked car. Although the girls had no idea what was going on with Liberty, Elisa guessed it must be something big and bad. Otherwise, Serenity would not be dumbstruck beyond words. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Serenity was not in the state to drive. Elisa took the wheel while Jasmine stayed in the backseat with Serenity. Serenity¡¯s phone rang again. It was Zachary. Serenity took the call with shaking hands as Jasmine watched her worriedly. Once the call was connected, Serenity still could not find the words to speak. It was like something was stuck in her throat. Tears kept flowing down her cheeks. ¡°Seren¡­¡± Zachary had made it to the hospital. Liberty was still in the emergency room. He was at a loss of what to say to his wife. They had assigned so many people to protect Liberty and Sonny in the dark. Yet, Liberty got hurt in the end. ¡°Seren¡­ Liberty¡­¡± Zachary could not speak another word. His fumbling for words only made Serenity take things the wrong way. Thinking that her sister did not make it, Serenity passed out and fell onto the seat. The phone fell from her hand. ¡°Seren!¡± Freaked out, Jasmine held Serenity up and pinched her nose. Elisa urgently stopped the car by the side of the road and jumped out of the car. She opened the door to the backseat and climbed in to take turns with Jasmine pinching Serenity¡¯s nose. Chapter 1391 Chapter 1391 Chapter 1391 Zachary heard Jasmine shout from the other side of the phone. He also kept calling, ¡°Seren, Seren!¡± Elisa picked up Serenity¡¯s phone and yelled at Zachary, ¡°Zachary, what did you say to Serenity? What did you say happened to Liberty?¡± ¡°Elisa, send Serenity back first. Liberty is injured and is being treated at the hospital. Let¡¯s talk about the rest when you¡¯re back.¡± ¡°How is Liberty doing?¡± Elisa¡¯s face changed as well. She knew Serenity was only so frightened because something happened to Liberty, but she did not know what exactly happened to Liberty. After hearing what Zachary said, Elisa was feeling nervous and afraid too. The Hunt sisters were her mom¡¯s favorites. If something were to happen to Liberty, who knew how sad Elisa¡¯s mom would be? ¡°I don¡¯t know either. She was stabbed a few times and is still being rescued. We¡¯re already at the hospital. Elisa, send Seren back with Ms. Sox now. Drive safe.¡± Zachary wished he could fly over to pick up his wife. However, he could not go away at this moment. Liberty needed a family member to be present. In case she needed to be transferred to another hospital, Zachary could make a prompt decision. He dared not leave her to Hank. ¡°Alright, I got it. We¡¯ll go back immediately. Find the best doctor for Liberty. She must be saved no matter how much it costs!¡± Zachary would do his best to save Liberty regardless of Elisa¡¯s reminder. After the call ended, Serenity woke up unhurriedly and instantly climbed into the driver¡¯s seat to drive. Jasmine and Elisa stopped her from doing so. If they let her drive, something serious would happen. ¡°Liberty!¡± Serenity could not touch the steering wheel. She pounded the seat and cried. She was going to lose her sister! N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Serenity only had her sister left. Why did God want to take her sister away as well?! Her parents were robbed of her, and now, it was going to be her sister! God was unfair! ¡°Seren, stop bawling and sit still. We¡¯ll go back right away. Liberty is still alive, so why are you crying? She¡¯s injured but is still being treated. She won¡¯t die, so sit still, and we¡¯ll head back.¡± When Serenity heard that her sister was still alive, she grabbed Elisa¡¯s shoulders and shook her.¡± Elisa, let¡¯s go let¡¯s go back now!¡± Elisa and Jasmine helped seat Serenity. ¡°Sit still and don¡¯t go crazy. I¡¯ll drive,¡± Elisa ordered Serenity. Serenity nodded vigorously. More people hade to wait at the hospital. After Duncan arrived, he could not help but grab Zachary¡¯s cor and asked angrily, ¡°You arranged for so many people to keep an eye on them. How did they let Liberty get hurt? How is she doing now?¡± When he heard that Liberty was stabbed several times and was sent to the hospital to be saved with her life shrouded in uncertainty, it was heart-wrenching. At this moment, he realized that his feelings for Liberty were different. He liked Sonny, but he also cared about Liberty. Duncan was terrified-he was scared to death! He never panicked and was not afraid when he was injured and hospitalized back then. Now that Liberty was injured, he was frightened and freaking out. He was afraid that she would not wake up. Zachary did not say anything. Josh pulled Duncan away and said, ¡°Why are you ming Zachary? He doesn¡¯t want Liberty to get hurt more than you do. That¡¯s his sister-inw¡¯s life! We¡¯ve all sent people to secretly protect Liberty. This can¡¯t be med on Zachary alone.¡± None of them wanted Liberty to get hurt. When Liberty and Sonny left with Hank and Jessica, the men who were secretly protecting them followed them every step of the way. Chapter 1392 Chapter 1392 Chapter 1392 When Sonny was snatched, even if Liberty and Hank did not go after him, the men who were secretly protecting them could also save him. They had long set up a trap and were ready to This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. catch the kidnappers. Only, they neglected a mother¡¯s determination to protect her child. Mothers were willing to sacrifice themselves for their children. A mother who saw her child being abducted would definitely run after the child. The men who were protecting Liberty and Sonny thought of that but did not expect Liberty to be able to keep up with the kidnappers. Her physical strength was amazing. She refused to give up no matter what. Even when she was kicked hard and stabbed by the bad guys, she did not let go. Only when she saw the Yorks¡¯ bodyguards did she know it was safe and was willing to let go. In the end, she was seriously injured while Sonny was unharmed. Duncan turned around and punched the wall. Yes, he too had sent people to protect Liberty and her son. Despite that, Liberty was still hurt. Duncan failed to protect her well! At this time, Clive and Mrs. Stone arrived. ¡°Zachary, how¡¯s Liberty doing? Have you told Serenity about this?¡± Clive asked. Mrs. Stone was so scared that she clutched her husband¡¯s hand. She was afraid that her niece, whom she had only recently reunited with, would leave with her sister. She had searched for her sister for decades but when there was finally news about her, it turned out that her sister had passed away more than a decade ago. Luckily, she still had two nieces to console her. Now, if even her niece was¡­ ¡°She¡¯s still inside and hasn¡¯te out yet, so I don¡¯t know about her situation. I¡¯ve told Serenity, and she¡¯s on her way back.¡± Clive hummed. Afterward, heforted his mom. Jessica had also quietlye and was keeping Hank and his sonpany. Her face was pale white. Sirens sounded endlessly at that time, so she knew many police had arrived. She also found out that Zachary had arranged for people to secretly protect Liberty and her son all this while. Since Jessica helped the bad guys snatch Sonny away¡­ She had probably been watched for a long time too. Zachary was waiting to collect evidence and catch those people in one go. Perhaps Liberty getting hurt was an ident to Zachary and the others. Hank told his parents about what happened. They were almost scared to death when they heard that their grandson was almost kidnapped again. They were only relieved after knowing that he was fine. When they heard that Liberty got injured from protecting Sonny and was being treated, they came to the hospital as well. Hank advised his parents to wait at home, but they were not willing to do so. Not long after Serenity, Jasmine, and Elisa arrived at the hospital, the door of the emergency room was opened. ¡°Doctor, how¡¯s my sister doing?¡± Serenity jumped over and grabbed the doctor¡¯s sleeves. She asked anxiously. Zachary held her. He was afraid that she might faint. The doctor responded, ¡°The patient¡¯s vital parts weren¡¯t stabbed, but her internal organs were injured, and she lost too much blood, which endangered her life. We operated on her, but she needs to be transferred to the ICU now and monitored for a few days. ¡°If she pulls through these few days, she¡¯ll be fine.¡± Surviving the next few days would mean that Liberty had truly passed the critical period and would be able to live. ¡°Doctor, you must save my sister-you must!¡± The doctor said, ¡°We¡¯ve done everything we could. Now, it¡¯s up to the patient to get through it. ¡°The stab wounds weren¡¯t fatal, but what¡¯s keeping her teetering on the edge of life and death are her internal injuries.¡± Serenity¡¯s legs went weak. Zachary held her andforted her, ¡°She¡¯ll be fine-she¡¯ll definitely be fine.¡± ¡°Zachary!¡± Serenity turned around and buried herself in his arms. She cried in pain. ¡°I¡¯m so scared-I¡¯m scared that she¡¯ll¡­ I¡¯m only left with her¡­ My parents are gone, so she¡¯s the only person I have left. If even she is¡­ Zachary, I¡¯m scared-I¡¯m really scared.¡± Chapter 1393 Chapter 1393 Chapter 1393 Serenity¡¯s words brought Mrs. Stone to tears as well. She thought of herself back then when she and her sister were sent to the orphanage, there were two of them. However, when she finally had news of her sister, she became the only one left. She did not even see her only sister onest time. Zachary hugged Serenity tightly, giving her support andfort. ¡°Seren, Liberty will be fine. She¡¯ll wake up soon. It¡¯ll be alright. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. We still have to help her take care of Sonny. He¡¯s terrified.¡± Serenity was so scared that she could not stop crying. Zachary¡¯s reassurance did not work at all but once he mentioned Sonny, her cries became softer. Yes, she still needed to help her sister take care of Sonny. After crying for a while, Serenity adjusted her emotions and took the tissue given to her by Zachary to wipe her tears. She then left his embrace and walked toward Sonny, who had been. held by Hank. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny stretched out his hands toward Serenity. Serenity picked him up and carried him. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m sorry.¡± Hank apologized guiltily. It was his fault. He did not carry Sonny and wanted to pull him over from Liberty. He would me himself for the rest of his life if anything happened to Liberty and if Sonny was taken away. Serenity carried her nephew and turned around to return to Zachary¡¯s side. She did not want to respond to Hank. Hank med himself. Mrs. Brown wanted to say something but was held back by Mr. Brown. Anything they were to say at this time would be wrong. Serenity must have hated their son. Jessica was even more afraid. She tried hard to be invisible. ¡°Aunt Ser, is Mom going to die?¡± Sonny asked in fear. The thought of his mom covered in blood scared him. Serenity pressed her nephew¡¯s head into her arms and hugged his still-shivering body tightly. She answered firmly in a hoarse voice, ¡°No, your mom will live a long life. She¡¯s not going to die. She loves you so much, Sonny. She¡¯ll watch you go to school and grow up. She won¡¯t leave you behind.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Aunt Ser, I¡¯m so scared.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t be scared. I¡¯m here, so don¡¯t be scared. We¡¯re not scared. Your mom will be fine-she¡¯ll be fine.¡± Sonny lifted his little face. His eyes were red and swollen, his face full of tear stains, and he looked extremely pale with dried blood stains on his face. Serenity looked down at her nephew and she felt her heart break again. She pressed Sonny¡¯s head against her arms once more and hugged him tightly while he hugged her neck. The door to the emergency room opened again. Liberty was pushed out. Serenity rushed over with her nephew in her arms. Even so, the nurses blocked her away. They pushed Liberty away and said, ¡°Family members, don¡¯t block the way. The patient has to be transferred to the ICU first.¡± Zachary quickly pulled Serenity out of the way. Afterward, they went to the ICU together, but the medical staff disallowed family members from. following them inside. Serenity saw her sister lying motionless on the hospital bed with a pale face. Her tears could not help but fall again. A small hand gently wiped her tears. Sonny said to her, ¡°Aunt Ser, don¡¯t cry. Mom will be fine.¡± Despite that, his face was already covered in tears. He knew his mom bled a lot because of him. ¡°Mm, I won¡¯t cry. Dust got into my eyes.¡± Serenity freed one of her hands to wipe away her tears. Chapter 1394 Chapter 1394 Chapter 1394 Liberty was in the ICU and did not need to be taken care of by family members, who were only allowed to visit inside for a while every day. Although Serenity could not watch over her sister in the ward, she refused to leave the hospital and insisted on waiting outside for her sister to wake up. Her sister would definitely wake up. Police came to the hospital. Everyone watched as several police officers walked over. ¡°Which one of you is Jessica Yates?¡± asked the policeman in the lead. Everyone looked at Jessica. Jessica answered with fear, ¡°I am.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. After saying something, that policeman immediately let two policewomen go forward to take her away. ¡°Officer.¡± Hank hurriedly blocked their way. His parents followed behind him. They all looked at the police officers. ¡°Officer, may I ask what crime my wife hasmitted? Why are you taking her away?¡± Hank questioned. ¡°We suspect that Jessica Yates is involved in this child abduction, so we need to take her back for the investigation. Please cooperate with us.¡± Jessica¡¯s face was ashen right away. Her legs went weak, and she could not even stand up. If not. for the two policewomen supporting her, she could have copsed to the ground. She could not believe it. It had only been a few hours since the incident, but the police hade to arrest her already. Were all the people sent by that unknown woman captured? Did they sell her out? When the incident happened, Jessica saw that many individuals from the other party helped stop Liberty from chasing the man who ran with Sonny in his arms. Though a group of people helped Liberty and the two groups fought, causing the scene to be more chaotic. There were also a few people who desperately tried to chase after Liberty. Jessica heard clearly when those people called Liberty ¡°Ms. Hunt¡±. Those were not the bad guys, but people who were helping Liberty. If Jessica guessed it right, they were sent by Mr. York. Jessica was hit with the sudden realization that time-Mr. York had been arranging for people to secretly follow Liberty and her son. Liberty was Sonny¡¯s biological mother. A woman¡¯s true potential could be seen when something happened to her child. The Yorks¡¯ bodyguards were all trained, so they were definitely not slow at running. Even so, they could not catch up to Liberty. Perhaps it was also because killers were charging out along the way to stop them. The Yorks¡¯ bodyguards and Duncans¡¯ men were only a few minuteste to catch up to Liberty. In the end, she was already stabbed a few times¡­ Jessica thought this incident would be the same as the zoo incident, where there would be no oue to the investigation. Chelsea hadined many times about how the police had not solved the case and caught the bad guys who tried to abduct the kids. Jessica received the news and was asked not to make a move for a while. She thought the other party would only act again after at least a few months. Who knew, she was deliberately urged these two days to bring Sonny out again. ¡°Officer, you must be mistaken. My wife¡­ How can she be a suspect in this incident? S-she was always with us, and she doesn¡¯t have the ability to do that.¡± Hank suspected that the police had made a mistake. The policeman said seriously, ¡°We have evidence. We¡¯ll never wrongly use anyone.¡± Hank wanted to say something else but was pulled away by his parents. ¡°Hank, didn¡¯t you see your wife¡¯s reaction? Her face was pale, and her legs were weak. That¡¯s the sign of fear after somethinges to light,¡± Mrs. Brown noted. After saying that, she came to her senses and quickly swooshed in front of Jessica. She raised her hand and pped Jessica twice. If not for one of the officers stopping her, she would have continued. ¡°B*tch, it was you indeed. How dare you collude with the kidnappers to kidnap my grandson?! You spiteful woman! Witch! Don¡¯t stop me, I¡¯ll rip her apart!¡± Chapter 1395 Chapter 1395 Chapter 1395 ¡°Jessica wants to cut off our family line! She wants to get Sonny and Liberty killed! This wicked woman! You b*tch!¡± Mrs. Brown cursed at the top of her lungs. If this incident was caused by Jessica, then the past ident when their family went to the zoo was not an ident, but a scheming n by her. How could this woman be so malicious?! She wanted to abduct both of her grandsons. When Serenity heard that Jessica was involved in the incident, she shoved Sonny into Zachary¡¯s arms and wanted to beat Jessica up. ¡°Seren.¡± Zachary tugged at Serenity and reminded her, ¡°She¡¯ll be punished byw. Don¡¯t do this.¡± The police hade, so they did not need to be the ones to teach Jessica a lesson. Julian had collected evidence, so Jessica would not be able to get away. She would be jailed for a few years at least. If the men of Mrs. Newman¡¯s godfather were captured, all of them had prior criminal records and would be dealt heavier sentences. That was because they were directly involved. Of course, Mrs. Newman could not escape too. In fact, the police had split into two groups. Some of them came to the hospital to take Jessica under investigation while the rest went to the Newmans¡¯ vi. With the help of Zachary, Josh, and Duncan¡¯s people, none of Mrs. Newman¡¯s men could escape this time. All of them were captured. In order to take Sonny away, Mrs. Newman acted desperately. She mobilized hundreds of people to help herplete this conspiracy without discussing it with her husband. Nheless, more than hundreds of people were truly involved in the n with many gangsters being hired. Camryn had said this before. Mrs. Newman would resort to drastic measures if she was impatient. Of course, Mr. Newman would probably vomit blood if he found out. He would scold his wife for being too hasty. Carrie was imprisoned because she was too impulsive. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Who knew, Mrs. Newman bore the same impulse as her daughter. On top of going to be imprisoned, she had cost them many men in the process. This was the most heartbreaking thing for Mr. Newman. Serenity did not go forward to bash Jessica up because her husband stopped her. Atst, Jessica was taken away by the police. She was in fact carried away because she was too weak to walk anymore. As an educated person, she knew what awaited her now that she was arrested. ¡°I was forced to do it¡­¡± Jessica turned her head and shouted at her husband with all her might. She was coerced indeed. If she did not do that, those people would kill her family. Was she supposed to watch her family get killed for the sake of Sonny? Jessica did not dare report it to the police, afraid that her family would still be killed if she did. She knew that she and her family had always been monitored. She had never met the people who were watching them, but she knew they were being watched. That unknown woman was powerful. ¡°It was because of Serenity¡­¡± said Jessica powerlessly. It was all because of Serenity. Chapter 1396 Chapter 1396 Chapter 1396 It was Serenity who offended the unknown woman. The woman wanted to take revenge on her, so she found Jessica and forced her to use Sonny. That woman said that even if Sonny was in her possession, as long as he behaved well and did not cry or cause trouble, she would not do anything to him. As long as Serenity went to see her, he would return safely. Sonny would not lose a single hair. How could Jessica know that Liberty would get hurt because of Sonny? Sonny was going to be fine no matter what. Hank stood in ce and muttered, ¡°How could it be Jessica? How could it be Jessica¡­? How could it be?¡± ¡°Hank!¡± Mr. Brown shouted fiercely and pped Hank all of a sudden. The p was as loud as it could be. Everyone watched, but no one stopped him. ¡°It was you-it was you who brought that spiteful woman into our family. She broke your marriage and caused havoc in our family. Sonny¡¯s custody was given to Liberty, and yet she did such a malicious thing to him. That vicious woman¡­ It was you-you were blind!¡± Mr. Brown pointed at his son and cursed at him. Hank did not dare speak even after being pped by his dad. He covered his beaten face and could not look at his parents. He did not know it woulde to this-even he could not imagine Jessica plotting something. against Sonny. Sonny was given to Liberty. If they did not go to see him, Sonny and Liberty would definitely not appear in front of them and their lives would not be affected at all. Why would Jessica do this? Was she afraid that Hank would rekindle his feelings for Liberty because of Sonny and would ask for a remarriage? She underestimated Liberty. Since Liberty divorced Hank, there was no way she would go back to him.. Not to mention Liberty¡¯s life was getting better while Hank¡¯s was getting worse. Even if it were the other way round, given her temperament, she would not look back and disturb his life. A smart person would not return to the life that had been given up. Liberty was that person. She would rather be a single mom for the rest of her life than return to a terrible man like Hank. ¡°I told you not to marry her as she¡¯s not as good as Liberty. You didn¡¯t listen and insisted that you were truly in love. Pfft, you used to say that about you and Liberty too!¡± Mrs. Brown scolded her son, ¡°What about now? Look what Jessica did. She quarrels with me and fights with your sister every day. She even said that we joined hands to bully her, but it was she who has been bullying us. She relies on your love for her and disregards us. ¡°Hank Brown, are you satisfied now? Are you?!¡± After scolding her son, Mrs. Brown pushed her husband and scolded him instead, ¡°I stopped you from transferring the money to Liberty and told you not to let them divorce. Neither you nor Hank listened to me. Now, you¡¯re ming your son for it!¡± Mr. Brown pushed Mrs. Brown back in anger and said, ¡°The worst was you and that great daughter of yours. If not for you talking so much, liking to pick fights, and sowing discord between Hank and Liberty, would this have happened?¡± ¡°How much better do you think you are? Have you ever said anything? Have you ever made a sound?¡± Mrs. Brown knew she was wrong-so wrong. She made Liberty, who used to be a good daughter-inw, leave her son. As a result, her son. married Jessica, a troublemaker and spendthrift who stirred their family into a tempest. It was fine if that was it, but that evil woman wanted to harm Lucas and Sonny. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Chelsea was loose-tongued, but as their aunt, how could Jessica be so ruthless as to collude with the kidnappers to kidnap Lucas? Did she do that to get back at Chelsea? After Liberty divorced Hank, she never clung to him. If Hank and Jessica did not always pester her, she might not have wanted to see them at all. She did not affect Hank¡¯s new life whatsoever, and yet Jessica wanted to harm Sonny. Mrs. Brown recalled how she kept asking her son to divorce Jessica and remarry Liberty. She even said that Liberty was capable enough to earn money and sessfully slimmed down to how she looked pre-marriage. If she and Hank remarried, Hank would benefit a lot from it. Did Jessica be resentful because of that and targeted Sonny as a result? Chapter 1397 Chapter 1397 Chapter 1397 After a long time, Mrs. Brown approached Serenity. She looked at Sonny, who was being carried by Serenity, and reached out to touch him but retracted her hand halfway. She said to Serenity with guilt, ¡°Serenity. I¡¯m sorry. It¡¯s our family¡¯s misfortune to have taken in a wicked woman and harmed your sister.¡± Serenity looked coldly at Mrs. Brown. When the police took Jessica away, Serenity did not know what exactly happened but she had her guesses. ¡°My sister divorced Hank and started her new life. Sonny has also been well taken care of by her. Please stay away from her in the future. She has never thought of remarrying Hank. ¡°Jessica is detestable, but so are you guys!¡± Mrs. Brown lowered her head in shame. Yes, they were equally detestable. Mrs. Brown saw Liberty and Serenity reunite with their rich aunt and learned that Serenity became the Yorks¡® missus. She desperately wanted to break up Hank and Jessica, hoping that he could remarry Liberty. As a result, Jessica developed hatred and wanted to take it out on Sonny. ¡°I don¡¯t want to see you. Please leave now.¡± When the police only took Jessica away, Serenity knew the Browns had nothing to do with this matter. Sonny was their grandson, after all. It was true that Mrs. Brown favored her daughter¡¯s son more, but she also cared about the only grandson bearing her family name; she would never collude with the bad guys to take Sonny away. Despite the Browns having nothing to do with this, Serenity did not want to see them. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Serenity, I know whatever we say now is useless, but we truly care about your sister. When she wakes up, I dare not ask toe to see her, but I hope you can send us a message to let us know that she¡¯s safe and well.¡± Serenity tensed up and did not say anything. After apologizing again, Mrs. Brown turned around and walked over to her husband to leave with him. Hank did not want to go but was dragged away by his parents, so he left with them. Once the Browns left, Serenity asked Zachary, ¡°Did Jessica do this?¡± ¡°She was just a pawn. The police have probably gone to the mastermind¡¯s house to take her away for investigation. Josh has submitted all the evidence and information on all those people to the police.¡± In the beginning, Josh only let Zachary take a quick look at the evidence and did not let him take them away. He was ready to hand them over to the police, but it was also for the sake of their safety In Josh¡¯s words, those people were good at counter¨Cinvestigation. Zachary¡¯s status in Wiltspoon was fearsome, but those people were not afraid of him. If Zachary possessed the evidence that could crush them, nobody knew if he would be able to live to see tomorrow. On the other hand, the Buchams were different. The Buchams had a low profile, but theirwork was shocking. Nobody dared to thoughtlesslyy their hands on the Buchams because countless big families might retaliate against them. Besides, the Buchams were known for finding information and had a powerful intelligencework. Nobody would know if those pieces of evidence were in Josh¡¯s possession. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll tell you more about itter. You should go home to rest first.¡± Many people wereing and going, so it was not the right time to talk about the details. ¡°I¡¯m not going home; I¡¯m going to wait here for my sister to wake up.¡± Even though Liberty did not need family care, Serenity did not want to leave. ¡°Seren, Liberty is in the ICU now and doesn¡¯t need our care, so let¡¯s go home first. You need to rest well to be able to take good care of Sonny. You have to take care of your sister too once she wakes up.¡± Zachary wanted to persuade his wife to go home to rest. ¡°I don¡¯t want to go home; I want to stay here to watch over my sister. For all we know, she¡¯ll wake up at night. Once she does, she¡¯ll want to see Sonny first.¡± Serenity was determined not to go home. ¡°Seren, Zachary is right. Your sister doesn¡¯t need our care now. You and Zachary should go home and rest first. I¡¯ll stay here to keep watch.¡± Chapter 1398 Chapter 1398 Chapter 1398 ¡°Mom,¡± Clive and Elisa called out to Mrs. Stone. Mr. Stone also disapproved of his wife¡¯s staying. He said, ¡°We can¡¯t do anything by staying in the hospital. Let¡¯s all go back to rest and take care of the things that haven¡¯t been taken care of yet.¡± ¡°I¡¯m worried!¡± Mrs. Stone¡¯s voice choked up right after she said that. She was worried about her niece as much as Serenity was worried about her sister. She and Serenity were the same. ¡°Aunt Audrey, go home and rest. I¡¯ll let you know as soon as my sister wakes up.¡± Serenity helped to persuade Mrs. Stone to go home. Mrs. Stone was gradually getting older, after all. She finally left the hospital after everyone repeatedly persuaded her. In the end, only Zachary, Serenity, and Duncan remained. ¡°Duncan, there are still many things you and Josh need to deal with together. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll let you know once Liberty wakes up.¡± Zachary knew his good friend was also worried about his sister- inw. He patted Duncan¡¯s shoulder and said, ¡°I¡¯m counting on you and Josh to wrap things up.¡± Duncan looked at the ICU ward. He wanted to be by Liberty¡¯s side, but she was in the ward at the moment. Even Serenity could not take care of her sister, let alone him. After a long silence, Duncan looked at Sonny again. Sonny had fallen asleep in Serenity¡¯s arms but was still subconsciously grabbing her shirt. What happened today was going to be a lifelong trauma for the three¨Cyear¨Cold kid. Duncan¡¯s heart ached for Sonny. ¡°Let me know if anything happens. I¡¯ll go deal with the follow¨Cup first.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Duncan took a deep breath and looked at the ward again before he turned around to leave. If they wanted Liberty and Sonny to be safe and be able to live like normal people in the future without having to worry about something like this happening again, they needed to handle this matter well. Zachary ordered his bodyguard to go out and pack some fast food back. He then asked his driver to take his RV to the hospital so that it would be easier to cook food for Sonny. After giving his orders, Zachary sat next to Serenity. He wanted to carry Sonny instead but as soon as he touched Sonny, the little boy was so frightened that he clung to Serenity¡¯s shirt with both hands. ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t be scared. I¡¯m here.¡± Serenity quickly hugged Sonny and patted him. She then lowered her head and rested her forehead against his. It had a calming effect, and Sonny was soothed again. ¡°I should carry him; he has taken a fright.¡± Zachary did not try to hold Sonny again. He removed his suit jacket and draped it over Sonny¡¯s body. Following that, he reached out and wrapped his arm around Serenity¡¯s shoulder. Heforted gently, ¡°Seren, Liberty will be fine. Don¡¯t worry too much.¡± ¡°Why did I have to go back to my hometown today? If I hadn¡¯t gone back¡­¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Even if Serenity did not go back to her hometown, she would be in her bookstore. Sonny started school today, and Jim was responsible for picking him up and dropping him off. ¡°Seren, even if you didn¡¯t go back to your hometown, you couldn¡¯t have protected Liberty when the incident happened. We were prepared to protect her, but she was still harmed¡­ We didn¡¯t protect her well.¡± Chapter 1399 Chapter 1399 Chapter 1399 Serenity tilted her head to look at Zachary and asked him, ¡°Did you guys discuss this long ago? Or did you already know the other party¡¯s plot and deliberately used Sonny to lure them?¡± ¡°We didn¡¯t!¡± Zachary hurriedly denied it. ¡°The Buchams only watched Mrs. Newman¡¯s moves and noticed that she was unusual today. They informed me and Duncan, so we increased our efforts to protect Liberty and Sonny.¡± Zachary exined, ¡°If they snatch Sonny away, we can surely save him. Only, we underestimated Liberty¡¯s determination as a mother to protect her child. She ran so fast at that time and left our bodyguards behind. ¡°They were only a few minutes slower, but she was already harmed.¡± Serenity looked down at Sonny, who was not even sleeping soundly. She said with red eyes, Sonny was born to my sister and is her life. Not to mention she didn¡¯t know you had people secretly protecting her and could help her save Sonny. But even if she knew, she would still chase after the bad guys out of a mother¡¯s instinct to get him back.¡± Zachary med himself and said, ¡°It was also due to our poor protection.¡± Serenity freed one of her hands to wipe her tears. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you remind my sister that Jessica was being used?¡± ¡°She knows¨Cit was she who suspected Jessica first and called to tell me about it. She insisted on following Hank and Jessica today because she suspected Jessica and refused to let Hank take Sonny away by himself.¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Why didn¡¯t she tell me?¡± Zachary was stumped for an answer. Liberty had her reason for not saying it, but he did not know why. ¡°Did Mr. Bucham have all the evidence?¡± ¡°The evidence is with Julian.¡± ¡°Why didn¡¯t you call the police when you have all the evidence?¡± Serenity questioned. Zachary answered after a moment of silence. ¡°Mrs. Newman¡¯s men were scattered in their hiding, so arresting one of them would alert the rest. After thest zoo incident, I told you and Liberty to treat that as an ident and to live as usual. ¡°But Mrs. Newman would definitely strike again. We just needed to bide our time, and when she goes crazy, we can focus our efforts on catching her and her men. Even if we can¡¯t capture all of them, we can capture most of them.¡± Serenity touched her nephew¡¯s face gently. ¡°At the end of the day, you were using Sonny.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Now, I don¡¯t even know if it was right that I saved Camryn in the past.¡± ¡°Seren, this isn¡¯t your fault; it¡¯s theirs. If you had watched Ms. Newman get hurt back then and didn¡¯t step in, you would have a bad conscience for the rest of your life.¡± Serenity bit her lip and did not speak. ¡°Have those people been caught now?¡± Zachary responded softly, ¡°None of those who helped create chaos and stopped my men escaped. All of them were captured. There were about a hundred people.¡± Serenity looked at him again, ¡°That crazy woman assigned so many people to be involved?¡± ¡°Yes, she probably thought that there¡¯s strength in numbers and they would certainly seed in snatching Sonny away.¡± Serenity remembered what Camryn said and repeated it, ¡°Camryn said that Mrs. Newman would resort to drastic measures if she was impatient. Carrie had really learned that well from her.¡± The mother and daughter did things based on their little whims regardless of the consequences. ¡°Mr. Newman might be taken out of this matter. He¡¯s 99% unaware of Mrs. Newman¡¯s arrangement today. If he knew, we wouldn¡¯t have let her do it. The pieces of evidence from Julian are also mostly unfavorable to Mrs. Newman.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Perhaps Mr. Newman had long thought of letting Mrs. Newman be the scapegoat.¡± Zachary hummed and said, ¡°That¡¯s possible. That couple is truly an eye¨Copener.¡± Ring, ring, ring¡­ Serenity¡¯s phone rang. Zachary¡¯s phone rang as well. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. The couple answered the calls at the same time. Chapter 1400 Chapter 1400 Chapter 1400 ¡°Seren, how¡¯s Liberty? It hasn¡¯t been long since I followed Kevin on a business trip, and such a big thing has happened.¡± The person who called Serenity was Grandma May. She followed Kevin to Jensburg on a business trip and had only just received the news of Liberty¡¯s misfortune. ¡°Nana¡­¡± Serenity had just stopped crying but wanted to cry again when she heard Grandma May¡¯s voice. She said in a sobbing tone, ¡°Nana, my sister is injured.¡± ¡°Seren, don¡¯t cry and tell me how she is. I¡¯m on my way back. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll be there even if the sky falls.¡± When Grandma May heard that Liberty was injured, she could not be bothered about creating opportunities for Kevin and rushed back to Wiltspoon. Kevin¡¯s work was almost finished, and he was worried about letting his nana go home by herself, hence he handed over the remaining work to someone else and returned to Wiltspoon with her. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°The doctor said she¡¯s out of the woods for now, but she has to stay in the ICU for a few days. She¡¯ll only be truly fine if she can pull through these few days.¡± ¡°Which hospital is she in?¡± Grandma May asked. Serenity told her. Grandma May said, ¡°That hospital is excellent and is one of the top three hospitals. Don¡¯t worry. your sister will get better. If anything, I¡¯ll be thick¨Cskinned and beg the genius doctor to go and save your sister. Don¡¯t worry and don¡¯t cry anymore, okay? I¡¯ll be right back. There¡¯s nothing to be afraid of when I¡¯m there, so don¡¯t you worry. ¡°I can tell one¡¯s fortune and have told the fortunes of you sisters. You¡¯re both destined to live a life of wealth and nobility and are very blessed. It¡¯ll be hard at first, but the reward willeter.¡± Grandma May had even told her granddaughter¨Cinw about the sisters¡® fortunes to reassure her. Under Grandma May¡¯sfort, Serenity¡¯s heart was slowly finding its peace. She also thought that her sister was blessed and could live a long life. The call Zachary received was from his mom. Tania asked about Liberty¡¯s injuries and Sonny¡¯s condition over the phone. Atst, she urged Zachary to take good care of Serenity. Zachary responded in a low voice, ¡°I will, Mom.¡± After the mother and son ended the call, Serenity was still talking to Grandma May, who also asked about Sonny¡¯s condition. She was slightly relieved to know that Sonny was fine. ¡°Mom, Mom¡­¡± Sonny was having a bad dream. Serenity immediately ended the call with Grandma May and calmed him. Sonny shouted for his mom. ¡°Sonny, Sonny, don¡¯t be scared. Your mom is fine, and I¡¯m here.¡± Serenity kept patting Sonny¡¯s little body to calm him down. Sonny suddenly opened his eyes. He looked at Serenity and seemed to havee back to his senses after a while. He sat up, wrapped his arms around Serenity¡¯s neck, and said with fear, ¡°Aunt Ser, I dreamed of a lot of blood. There was a lot of blood¨CMom lost a lot of blood. I¡¯m so scared.¡± ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t be afraid. Your mom is fine and will wake up tomorrow.¡± ¡°The bad guy hit her, kept kicking her, and even stabbed her with a knife¡­¡± Sonny was pale white when he described everything. His usually clear and bright big eyes were filled with fear at this moment, and his little body was shaking. That scene was seared onto his mind. He would dream about it whenever he closed his eyes and fell asleep. He was terrified! Chapter 1401 Chapter 1401 Chapter 1401 ¡°Sonny.¡± Zachary carried Sonny over. Sonny did not resist his embrace when he was awake. The person he trusted most at the moment besides his Aunt Ser was his Uncle Zak. ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t be scared. I¡¯ve defeated the bad guys, the police have also taken them away, and the doctor saved your mom. Tomorrow or the day after at thetest, your mom wille out and open her eyes to call you.¡± Sonny looked seriously at Zachary and asked, ¡°Uncle Zak, is what you say true?¡± ¡°When have I ever lied to you, Sonny? It¡¯s true.¡± Zachary carried Sonny and walked toward the bathroom. ¡°Sonny, I¡¯ll take you to wash your face and hands, okay?¡± Sonny nodded because he saw that his hands were dirty. With that, Zachary took Sonny into the bathroom to clean his face and hands beforeing out again. His bodyguard happened to have returned with fast food. Serenity had no appetite to eat. She fed Sonny first, but he had also lost his appetite. Zachary advised them again, ¡°Seren, Sonny, how can you hold up if you don¡¯t eat anything? When Liberty wakes up but you both copsed, wouldn¡¯t she be worried? Sonny,e, I¡¯ll feed you. Once you¡¯re full, you¡¯ll take a shower, change into clean clothes, and wait for your mom to wake up. ¡°If she wakes up and sees what you¡¯re wearing now, she¡¯ll be terrified.¡± Sonny looked down at his clothes. They were very dirty indeed. They were also covered in blood. Sonny was easily coaxed. He was sessfully coaxed by Zachary and was willing to eat. Serenity forced herself to eat something. In Zachary¡¯s words, she would not be able to hold up if she did not eat and drink. If she were to copse before her sister woke up, how could she take care of her sister? Half an hourter, Zachary¡¯s driver brought the RV over. Zachary let Serenity take Sonny to shower and change into clean clothes. He called Josh only after Serenity left. ¡°Josh, how¡¯s it going?¡± ¡°Mrs. Newman was taken away for investigation, but not Mr. Newman.¡± Josh said regrettably, ¡°Mr. Newman happened to go on a business trip this morning and is currently not in Wiltspoon.¡± Zachary had long guessed this oue. ¡°The rest was caught, and the man who stabbed your sister¨Cinw a few times was also sent to the hospital and is under police surveince.¡± That man was seriously beaten up by the Yorks¡® bodyguards. He was wounded. ¡°Has your sister¨Cinw woken up yet?¡± ¡°Not yet.¡± Josh added after a moment of silence, ¡°Comfort your wife and exin this matter clearly to her so that she doesn¡¯t misunderstand you.¡± ¡°I know.¡± ¡°Let us know if there¡¯s anything we can do to help.¡± Zachary thanked Josh. The sky was getting dark outside. It was almost nighttime. Duncan came again. ¡°Zachary.¡± Duncan walked over and called out in a low voice, and then he looked toward the ward and asked, ¡°Has Liberty not woken up yet?¡± Zachary shook his head.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1402 Chapter 1402 Chapter 1402 Duncan looked worried. He retracted his gaze after a long time and reached out to carry Sonny out of Serenity¡¯s arms, but Sonny did not want to be carried by him. Sonny turned his head andy on Serenity¡¯s shoulder. Duncan looked gloomy. He felt that even Sonny was ming him for not protecting Liberty well. ¡°Sonny is frightened and only clings to his Aunt Ser now,¡± Zachary exined. Duncan pursed his lips and responded, ¡°It¡¯s okay, I don¡¯t me him. Zachary, I¡¯ll watch over Liberty here. You should take Serenity and Sonny back to rest for a while.¡± Zachary said after some thought, ¡°Okay.¡± He persuaded Serenity and Sonny to go rest in the RV with him. He woulde back to keep watch over his sister¨Cinw for the second half of the night. Zachary was at ease now that Duncan was here. Besides, his bodyguards were present as well. ¡°Serenity, you can hold on, but Sonny is a child and won¡¯t be able to do the same, so you should think for him. He¡¯s the child your sister was desperately trying to protect. You have to take good care of him so that she feels assured and wakes up.¡± Duncan persuaded Serenity to get some rest. Serenity looked at her nephew again. Sonny was clinging to her very much at the moment. Atst, Serenitypromised for the sake of Sonny. She went to rest in the RV first and set an rm so that she coulde and watch over her sister for the second half of the night. Meanwhile, at the Browns¡® house. ¡°How could it be Jessica? How could it be?¡± Hank, who was dragged home by his parents, had been mumbling and saying the same thing for hours. He was in disbelief, and he refused to believe it. How could Jessicay hands on Sonny? Jessica witnessed the whole process of his divorce from Liberty. It was also she who advised him to give up Sonny¡¯s custody at that time, and he listened to her. Although Hank¡¯s mom and sister kept asking him to divorce Jessica and remarry Liberty, he did not do that. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Did he not make a firm decision to hold a wedding with Jessica? They also agreed to go on a honeymoon after their wedding. They had decided on a location and had even booked the hotel. Jessica should not do anything to Sonny at this time. Besides, how could Jessica create such a huge scene? All of a sudden, Hank was ruthlessly pped on the arm. Mrs. Brown was half¨Cexasperated by her son¡¯s reaction. ¡°The truth is right in front of you, and yet you¡¯re still speaking for that spiteful woman! Can¡¯t you think with your brain? If you want Sonny to be the flower boy, why didn¡¯t you just buy him a new suit? Why did she insist on going to Liberty¡¯s diner to take Sonny with you? Something must be wrong. ¡°You fool¨Cidiot! You can¡¯t even think with your brain. That wicked woman hates it the most when we go to see Sonny, and she doesn¡¯t like us having too much interaction with him and Liberty. Why would she support and even encourage you to get close to Sonny recently? ¡°We were all tricked by her. I thought she let us visit Sonny because she doesn¡¯t have a child of her own yet and thought she wouldn¡¯t have one. Who knew, it was because she had such a vicious n. No wonder she let you take Sonny to the zoo, and no wonder her face was as dark as charcoal when I asked your sister to go along. It was her¨Cit was her! ¡°She must¡¯ve also been the one responsible for the abduction of the kids at the zoost time. She even wanted to take Lucas away. It¡¯s clear that she wanted to get back at your sister and resents your sister for always targeting her. She¡¯s an evil woman!¡± Mrs. Brown cursed about Jessica fiercely. ¡°Hank, divorce her! Divorce her right now! Even if you can¡¯t marry another woman after the divorce, I want you to divorce her. We can¡¯t have such a malicious woman in our family!¡± Hank said, ¡°Mom, this matter hasn¡¯t been concluded yet. The police only took Jessica back for an investigation. How could she be capable of doing something like this? I was also running after Sonny at that time, and I saw many peoplee to stop me and Liberty. Even if those people were paid to do so, it must¡¯ve cost a lot. Jessica doesn¡¯t have that much money.¡± Mrs. Brown pped him again. ¡°How did she react just now? Did you not see her? Are you saying that the police wronged her? Would the police have taken her away without evidence? Why didn¡¯t they take me away?¡± Hank was instantly speechless. Chapter 1403 Chapter 1403 Chapter 1403 Knock, knock. There was a knock on the door. Mr. Brown went to open the door. As soon as the door opened, Chelsea crashed in and asked nervously, ¡°Dad, how¡¯s Liberty? Is Sonny fine? I rushed over right away after receiving your call.¡± Mr. Brown answered, ¡°Sonny is fine. He was just very frightened and is only willing to follow his Aunt Ser now. As for Liberty¡­ She¡¯s still in the ICU. The doctor said she¡¯ll be fine if she pulls through the next few days, but if she doesn¡¯t¡­ Ah, pfft, she¡¯ll pull through. She¡¯s a good person, and a good person will also be blessed.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, yes, Liberty is a good person. She¡¯ll definitely be fine-she¡¯ll be fine.¡± Chelsea had been nice to Liberty and Serenity ever since Serenity saved her little son. She sincerely hoped that Liberty would get better. When she saw her brother, she pounced over and punched him a few times. She scolded, ¡°Hank, you didn¡¯t listen to us. Look what kind of a vicious woman you married! She made a mess of our family and tried to harm Sonny. ¡°She even let the kidnappers take Lucas away at the zoost time. She¡¯s so wicked. I did target her, so I¡¯ll ept it if she hates and resents me, and I won¡¯t say anything if shees at me. However, she went after my innocent child. ¡°What an evil person. I thought I was bad enough, but she¡¯s worse than me. I targeted her, but Liberty never did anything to her, yet she wanted toy her hands on Sonny. Is she trying to cut off our family line?¡± Chelsea was sensible and knew she was not a good person. Mrs. Brown had told her daughter everything on the phone. Therefore, Chelsea started scolding Hank as soon as she arrived. Hank wanted to stand up for his wife but could not say anything. If he dared defend Jessica again, his parents would rip him apart first! Moreover, he also experienced the shock of his son almost being kidnapped. He could not defend Jessica anymore. In his parents¡® words, the police would not have taken her away and not let here home if she had nothing to do with the incident. Additionally, Jessica¡¯s reaction¨Cher ashen face¨Cwhen she was taken away confirmed that she was in the know. ¡°Mom, which hospital is Liberty in? This won¡¯t do. I have to go see her,¡± Chelsea asked her mom after scolding her brother and Jessica. She wanted to see Liberty. At the same time, she said regretfully, ¡°It¡¯s my fault. If I hadn¡¯t talked too much and babbled back then, this wouldn¡¯t have happened, and that vicious woman wouldn¡¯t be here.¡± Mrs. Brown said, ¡°Even if we were nice to Liberty, your fickle brother will still get together with that spiteful woman. I advised him not to divorce Liberty, but he insisted on doing it. I also reminded him that that malicious woman isn¡¯t suitable as a partner for life, but he didn¡¯t listen to me either!¡± Hank was speechless. ¡°Liberty is in the ICU now. You can¡¯t see her even if you go,¡± Mrs. Brown added. Chelsea turned around and left. She said to her husband, ¡°Darling, send me to the hospital. Whether I get to see her or not is one thing; going there shows my sentiment. If it wasn¡¯t for Liberty and Serenity thest time, Lucas would¡¯ve been kidnapped and sold by that evil woman.¡± She kept cursing Jessica. ¡°I¡¯ll go with you.¡± Mrs. Brown was extremely worried and could not sleep at home, so she followed her daughter to the hospital. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. The people who were guarding Liberty in the hospital at the moment were Duncan and a few of the Yorks¡® bodyguards. Serenity and Zachary were resting in the RV for the time being. Duncan could not enter the ward, so he stood at the door and looked through the small ss window at Liberty lying motionless on the hospital bed. His heart was twisted as if it was cut a thousand times. He was in pain! ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Duncan murmured softly, ¡°You have to wake up and get better quickly. I promise I won¡¯t let you and Sonny get hurt in the future. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ve only realized now that I¡¯m afraid of losing you. I do like Sonny, but I like you too. You have to get better; I haven¡¯t told you what I feel.¡± Chapter 1404 Chapter 1404 Chapter 1404 Duncan had no idea he cared so much about Liberty. He always thought that he liked Sonny and was nice to Liberty because of the little guy. After knowing that Liberty was stabbed a few times by the bad guy, Duncan was heartbroken, and it was difficult to describe the pain. As slow as he was, he came to understand that he had long developed feelings for Liberty. Why did he like her? He did not know either. No wonder his friends always saw him and Liberty as a pair; outsiders had a better perception. Duncan was not moved even when he faced the outstanding Lily. Instead, he wanted to run away. It was not that Lily was not good enough, but he had unknowingly had his heart set on Liberty. When Chelsea, her husband, and her parents arrived at the hospital, they saw Duncan keeping watch outside the ward. Duncan turned around when he heard footsteps. Seeing that it was Chelsea and her husband, his face turned gloomy, and he looked coldly at the Browns. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Chelsea could not help but question Duncan. Duncan asked coldly, ¡°What does it matter to you that I¡¯m here?¡± Chelsea choked. Now that Liberty was free and had lost weight, it was normal to have pursuers. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Duncan had always been nice to Liberty. The Browns felt that Duncan was extremely good to Sonny because he had improper thoughts about Liberty. As Liberty had not slimmed down at that time, the Browns fooled andforted themselves that Duncan would not take a fancy to her. After all, he was a CEO with a worth of tens of billions of dors, whereas she was a fat divorcee with a three¨Cyear¨Cold son. However, when the Browns saw Duncan keeping watch outside the ward now, they could not deceive themselves any longer. He truly liked Liberty. Otherwise, he would not be guarding her wardte at night. The Browns did not know what to feel. ¡°It¡¯ste. What are you doing here instead of sleeping?¡± Duncan coldly questioned Chelsea in return. ¡°I came to see my sister¨Cin-¡± ¡°Mrs. Repton, have you forgotten that Liberty and your brother are divorced? She¡¯s no longer your sister¨Cinw, so please stop calling her that. She doesn¡¯t want to hear you call her that either.¡± Chelsea was lost for words. ¡°Chelsea.¡± Mrs. Brown tugged at her daughter and reminded her not to argue with Duncan. It would be useless. Duncan was right. Liberty and Hank had long divorced, and Hank had remarried thereafter. ¡°How¡¯s Liberty? Why isn¡¯t Serenity watching over her sister here? Why are you here instead?¡± Chelsea asked. She was still displeased and did not want to see Duncan watching over Liberty. Jessica was a vicious woman. Chelsea would definitely persuade her brother to divorce Jessica as she wanted to get him to remarry Liberty. Now, Liberty had a new pursuer. Duncan¡¯s face was scarred, but he had a good family background and had the upper hand aspared to Hank. Chelsea was unhappy because she felt that there was not a shred of hope left for her brother¡¯s remarriage to Liberty. Chapter 1405 Chapter 1405 Chapter 1405 ¡°What¡¯s wrong with me being here to watch over Liberty? How does it affect you? Who are you to Liberty? Is it your ce to influence my decision? You don¡¯t need to care about how Liberty is doing It¡¯s your family¨Cyour awesome sister¨Cinw¨Cthat caused her to be lying there now!¡± Duncan said to Chelsea. ¡°Jessica is a spiteful woman. I never considered her as my sister¨Cinw, and I only recognize Liberty as that.¡± ¡°Hah!¡± Duncan said sarcastically, ¡°Have you forgotten what you did to Liberty back then, Mrs. Repton? Liberty needs rest, and your family isn¡¯t wee here, so please leave now!¡± Duncan gestured to the Yorks¡® bodyguards to shoo Chelsea, her parents, and George. The Browns were the most bizarre and outrageous people he had ever met. Chelsea did not get to see Liberty. Duncan was standing in the doorway, so she did not even have a chance to get close. The York¡¯s bodyguards came to shoo her, so her parents pulled her away. In Duncan¡¯s words, Liberty was lying there at the moment because of their family. After the Browns left, Duncan looked at Liberty again through the ward¡¯s window. ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll help you teach them a lesson if they dare bully and pester you again. You must also be firm and don¡¯t be fooled by their sweet words. They¡¯re now bent on getting you and Hank to remarry because you¡¯re capable of earning money now and your sister is married to a rich family. They only want to benefit from you.¡± Duncan said many things to Liberty. Originally, he agreed with Zachary and Serenity that they would split the night watch. However, he could not leave and kept watch throughout the night. Zachary wanted his beloved wife to rest well, to begin with, so he secretly turned off her rm. Duncan stayed awake until dawn and turned haggard overnight. ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s almost daytime. Do you think the sun will be up today? Usually, you¡¯ll already be busy working at your breakfast store at this time. I like to eat your breakfast and watch your confident and busy figure. ¡°Liberty, you have to wake up soon and stop sleeping. We¡¯re all worried about you¨Cso worried about you. ¡°Liberty, can you hear me? It¡¯s okay if you can¡¯t hear me now. I¡¯ll tell you whatever you want me to say when you wake up.¡± Liberty could not hear Duncan at the moment. She was still in the dark, unable to find the light. She was anxious and wanted to break out of the darkness to save her child. All of a sudden, a faint light appeared in front of her. She immediately followed the light. ¡°Lib, Lib¡­¡± Liberty heard the familiar voices that were long embedded deep in her memories. It was her parents! She stopped, turned around, and actually saw her parents who had passed away sixteen years ago. ¡°Dad, Mom.¡± Liberty was excited to see her parents. She quickly ran toward them. ¡°Dad, Mom, you¡¯re back, you¡¯re back. You¡¯re finally back. Seren and I have missed you so much.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Liberty buried herself in her mother¡¯s arms and cried like a child. ¡°Lib, why are you here? This isn¡¯t the ce for you toe. You should go back.¡± Liberty¡¯s mom embraced her and spoke gently, but her words were the cruelest to her. She finally saw her parents, but her mom wanted her to leave. Liberty did not want to leave. She wanted to be with her parents! When Liberty¡¯s parents passed away, she was the elder sister and was only fifteen. She braced herself to take care of her younger sister, but in fact, she wanted to rely on someone too and missed her parents very much. Liberty dreamed of her parents and had woken up many times. deep into the night when her tears wet her pillowcase. Even after Liberty grew up and worked, every year on Mother¡¯s Day and Father¡¯s Day, she saw that others could get together with their parents or at least give them a phone call. On the other hand, she and her sister could only rely on their memories, thinking about their parents¡® voices and smiles. One time, Liberty secretly cried in the office and was discovered by a coworker. Her coworker was startled and asked her what was wrong, and she said she missed her parents. Chapter 1406 Chapter 1406 Chapter 1406 How Liberty had hoped that everything bad was a dream and that when she woke up, her parents were still around and their family of four was fine. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Nobody knew how much she had endured. Her sister could cry on her when she was sad, but who could she cry on when she had a hard time? ¡°Mom, I don¡¯t want to go. I want to be with you and Dad.¡± Liberty shook her head in her mother¡¯s arms, not wanting to leave her parents. Lisa pushed her away. ¡°Lib, think about Seren and your son, Sonny. They need you and are waiting for you to go back. Listen to me and quickly return. This isn¡¯t the ce for you. Go now!¡± said Lisa as she pushed her daughter away again. Liberty thought of her sister and her son. Yes, she still had to raise her son, and her sister was still there. What would happen to Sonny if she stayed with her parents? Also, if Serenity found herself in asional quarrels with Zachary and wanted to go back to her maiden home, nobody would be there. ¡°Lib, go back,¡± Scott spoke up and broke his silence. Both her parents urged her to leave. They even pushed her to the other side together. As she was being pushed along, she kept looking back. When she saw a bright light ahead, her parents waved at her. She knelt with tears in her eyes and bowed three times at them. ¡°Walk toward the ce where there is light¡­¡± Her parents¡® words faded away until they could no longer be heard. She could not hear them anymore. Liberty stood up and turned around with tears in her eyes. She walked toward the ce where there was light. Duncan, who was outside the ward, seemed to see Liberty in tears. He thought he was seeing things, so he quickly rubbed his eyes to look more carefully. It seemed that Liberty was really shedding tears. ¡°Jim, Jim,e and help me see. Is Liberty tearing up?¡± Duncan was afraid that he was wrong, so he asked Jim to help him take a look. Jim walked over, and Duncan gave way for him to see. Jim also rubbed his eyes a few times before looking again and said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, Ms. Hunt seems to be shedding tears indeed. She might be waking up soon. Quick, call the doctor.¡± As he said that, he ran to call the doctor. The other bodyguards informed Zachary and Serenity right away. Serenity, who was resting in the RV, did not sleep well. As for Sonny, he fell asleep but did not sleep soundly. He woke up from time to time and bawled. After receiving the call from one of the bodyguards, Sonny happened to wake up again and was crying. ¡°Seren, Liberty might be waking up soon. Duncan said he saw her shedding tears.¡± Zachary got up and carried Sonny with one hand. He then said to Serenity, ¡°Quick, let¡¯s go look.¡± take a Serenity acted even faster when she heard that her sister might be waking up soon. She jumped out of bed and wanted to get off. She almost tripped but luckily, Zachary caught her. By the time the couple returned to outside the ICU ward, Liberty happened to be pushed out. She even opened her eyes. ¡°Liberty, Liberty.¡± ¡°Mommy¡­¡± Serenity was so surprised yet overjoyed to see her sister awake that she cried. On the other hand, Sonny called out to his mom as little kids usually would. Chapter 1407 Chapter 1407 Chapter 1407 Liberty saw that her son was well and her sister was also present. She could not speak yet, so she mustered a smile tofort her sister, but the tears in the corner of her eyes could not be stopped. She made the choice again. Liberty temporarily abandoned her parents and chose toe back to stay with her sister and take care of her son. ¡°Doctor, how¡¯s my sister-inw doing?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°The patient is awake and is out of danger. She doesn¡¯t need to stay in the ICU anymore.¡± Everyone was finally relieved. Liberty was transferred to a general ward, and Zachary arranged for her to stay in a VIP ward. It was quiet and suitable for his sister¨Cinw to recover. Although Liberty was awake, her body was still very weak. After being pushed back into the ward, she quickly fell into a deep sleep again. Serenity sat in front of the bed with Sonny in her arms to watch over her sister. She would gently touch the end of her sister¡¯s nose from time to time to make sure that she was breathing normally. Only then was Serenity at ease. It was after dawn when Zachary informed Mrs. Stone and the others that Liberty was out of danger and had woken up briefly. Grandma May and the others arrived at the hospital early in the morning. It was already toote when Grandma May returned to Wiltspoonst night, so the young ones refused to let here to the hospital. She could only endure until daybreak and came in a hurry. ¡°Nana,¡± Serenity stood up with Sonny in her arms and greeted her when she came into sight. Grandma May hummed. She went to see Liberty first and saw that she was still sleeping with a pale face. She was heartbroken. ¡°My heart aches. We had so many people, and yet we failed to protect a woman and a child!¡± Zachary and Duncan kept mum. They had indeed failed to protect the mother and the child well. ¡°What did the doctor say?¡± Grandma May asked Serenity. ¡°The doctor said that my sister¡¯s life is no longer threatened. She woke up and came out of the ICU at daybreak. Now, she¡¯s sleeping again.¡± Grandma May hummed again. ¡°As long as she¡¯s fine, as long as she¡¯s fine. I was so worried that I couldn¡¯t sleep well. It¡¯s alright, Seren. Don¡¯t worry too much. I told you that you and your sister are immensely blessed. She¡¯ll get better in no time.¡± Afterward, she went to carry Sonny. After being frightened, Sonny was only willing to be carried by Serenity and Zachary. Nheless, when Grandma May wanted to carry him, he still stretched out his hands and let her carry him. ¡°Sonny was frightened. He kept waking up and cryingst night.¡± ¡°Of course. I¡¯ll go find a therapistter to help calm him down. As long as we stay with him and slowly talk to him, he¡¯ll recover.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Grandma May believed that therapy could help a traumatized child. Well, she had done this many times in the past. Serenity believed in it as well. Since Grandma May suggested it, she thanked her for it. ¡°We¡¯re family, so why are you thanking me? I feel sorry for Sonny too. Luckily, those bad guys were caught. This won¡¯t happen again in the future.¡± Even so, she still red at her grandson. Zachary was afraid to make a peep. When Grandma May saw Duncan, she was shocked. ¡°Duncan, are you injured as well? You look terrible,¡± Grandma May asked with concern. Everyone looked at Duncan. Duncan touched his face and asked, ¡°Do I look terrible? Grandma May, I¡¯m not injured. I¡¯m fine and don¡¯t feel ufortable anywhere.¡± He just watched over Liberty all night. ¡°Ghastly¨Cyou look ghastly. In fact, you look awful and haggard.¡± Chapter 1408 Chapter 1408 Chapter 1408 Duncan stopped talking. After everyone saw Liberty, Grandma May asked his daughters¨Cinw to head home first and not to disturb Liberty here. Zachary and Serenity looked extremely tired as well. The Stones and the Soxes also came to visit Liberty after learning that she was out of the woods. Mrs. Stone stayed in the hospital until Liberty woke up for the second time and only then did she feel relieved. The Yorks¡® bodyguards bought breakfast for everyone. After having breakfast, Zachary said to Duncan, ¡°Duncan, you should get some rest at home first. We agreed to each keep watch for half ofst night, but you stayed up the whole night by yourself.¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯m neither sleepy nor tired. I¡¯ll wait a bit more.¡± Duncan looked at Liberty, who was surrounded by her rtives and friends. When Liberty woke up for the second time, she still spoke weakly but was in a better spirit than when she first regained consciousness. She did not even notice Duncan, who was outside the crowd. Duncan looked at her in a daze. It was fine even if Liberty could not see him. He was tall and could see her from beyond the crowd. Duncan was just happy to see her awake. He did not feel tired at all. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Duncan¡¯s phone rang at this time. He left the ward to answer the call as he was afraid of disturbing Liberty. It was his mom. ¡°Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis asked directly over the phone, ¡°Are you in the hospital?¡± The incident yesterday caused a huge stir. It was because the police caught a lot of people. Many were saying that almost all of the police in Wiltspoon were dispatched yesterday for so many people to be caught. After knowing that a child was almost kidnapped, many families with children carried their children while out and about if they could. Children who were older and could not be carried anymore were held tightly by their parents as they were afraid that their children would be taken away. It was not surprising that Mrs. Lewis knew about the incident. Despite that, it was onlyter that she learned that the kidnapped child was Liberty¡¯s son. She also found outter that Liberty was injured. When her youngest son did note homest night, Mrs. Lewis purposely went to the houses belonging to her son today to look for him but to no avail. He was also nowhere to be seen at his office, so she guessed that he was in the hospital. ¡°I¡¯m in the hospital. What¡¯s wrong, Mom?¡± Duncan asked his mom in a deep voice, ¡°Is something wrong?¡± ¡°Is Liberty okay? I heard she was stabbed a few times.¡± Liberty was stabbed several times for the sake of her son. Since she was also a mother, Mrs. Lewis admired Liberty for that. ¡°She woke up at five in the morning. The doctor said she was no longer in critical condition, so she was released from the ICU and transferred to the general ward.¡± Mrs. Lewis responded, ¡°Thank God. As long as she¡¯s fine.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Following that, she changed her tone and asked her son, ¡°How did you know what happened at five o¡¯clock? When did you go to the hospital?¡± ¡°I arrived at the hospital yesterday.¡± Duncan did not avoid his mom¡¯s question. He answered honestly, ¡°I stayed in the hospital all night. I couldn¡¯t be at ease when Liberty was still in danger.¡± Mrs. Lewis knew it was bad when she heard that her son had been watching over Liberty all night. Was her worry turning into reality? ¡°Liberty could be watched over by her sister. Must an outsider like you keep watch there overnight?¡± ¡°Mom, I stayed voluntarily. I was just worried. As long as Liberty wasn¡¯t awake, I couldn¡¯t leave the hospital. Even if I did, I wouldn¡¯t be in the mood to do anything.¡± After Duncan realized his feelings, he became very frank when facing his mom. Chapter 1409 Chapter 1409 Chapter 1409 Mrs. Lewis was silent on the other end of the line for a while before she asked, ¡°Liberty is now awake and out of danger. When are youing back? You must be tired after keeping watch the whole night in the hospital. Come home and rest.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m not tired. I can still hold on, so you don¡¯t have to worry about me.¡± Mrs. Lewis wanted tosh out at her son. Even so, she held back. She did not say anything else and silently hung up the phone. After his mom ended the call, Duncan put his phone back into his pocket and returned to the ward. He still stood outside the crowd and watched Liberty quietly. Although Liberty was no more at risk, she was still very weak. The doctor did not allow too many family members to stay in the ward as it would disturb her rest. As such, everyone had to leave one after another after seeing her. Thest ones to stay in the hospital were Zachary, Serenity, and Duncan again. Liberty went back to sleep and could sleep more soundly. She was still alive, her son was well, and the bad guys were caught. She waspletely at ease. ¡°Seren, now that Liberty is fine and is resting, you should rest on that bed with Sonny for a while.¡± Zachary let Serenity take Sonny to rest on the bed reserved for family members on the side. ¡°You didn¡¯t sleep wellst night either. You have dark circles under your eyes.¡± Serenity carried Sonny and sat on the edge of the bed to look at her sister. ¡°I¡¯m not sleepy. If you¡¯re sleepy, you should rest.¡± Zachary was helpless. He turned his head and saw his good friend. He patted Duncan¡¯s shoulder and walked out of the ward with him. ¡°Duncan, you¡¯ve been watching over Liberty all night. You should go home and rest. Don¡¯t copse before Liberty recovers.¡± Duncan said, ¡°I don¡¯t want to leave either; I still feel uneasy. Perhaps I can only work without worries when Liberty can get out of bed and walk.¡± Zachary pursed his lips and did not know how to persuade him. Ring, ring, ring¡­ Zachary¡¯s phone rang. It was Josh who called. Zachary answered the call. Nobody knew what Josh told him on the phone, but his face turned dark. Duncan heard him telling Josh to find out who had secretly filmed him and to take down the trending topic. After Zachary finished, he hung up. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Duncan asked with concern. Zachary turned to look at the ward to make sure that Serenity would note out. He then said in a low voice, ¡°Josh said that Seren and I were secretly photographed by the paparazzi when she came to the hospital for a checkup the day before yesterday. The paparazzi reported that Seren is infertile and that we went to the hospital to seek medical treatment, but we argued, and I left in anger. ¡°This became a trending topic for Wiltspoon¡¯s entertainment news. The ranking is getting higher, and it seems to bepeting for first ce.¡± That day, Zachary just thought that Serenity was pregnant and took her to the hospital for a checkup. The result was negative. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. After that, Serenity suggested doing a medical checkup, worried that they might have issues with their constitutions for the reason behind her not conceiving even after being married for half a year. Zachary refused. Serenity tried to convince him, but he left in anger right after. Chapter 1410 Chapter 1410 Chapter 1410 Zachary and Serenity had a disagreement. Serenity even stayed overnight at the Soxes¡® and followed her close friends back to her hometown the next day to check the progress of her investment project. That was why she was not with Liberty and her son. When something happened to Liberty yesterday, Serenity rushed back after receiving the call. The small interlude between Zachary and Serenity was captured by the paparazzi and exposed. Now, it was even trending. If Serenity saw this, she might even me herself and think that she did not protect her sister well because of the conflict between her and Zachary. Zachary asked Josh to handle it. They had to try to hide it from Serenity and not let her know¨Cat least not at this time. Duncan said, ¡°Given your status, anything that has to do with you can easily be a trending topic¡­ Especially after you got married, everyone became highly interested in your married life with Serenity. Those paparazzi are everywhere. They¡¯re the most well¨Cinformed. ¡°They¡¯ll definitely bepetent private detectives.¡± Duncanforted Zachary rather sympathetically. Atst, he asked Zachary with concern, ¡°You¡¯re good, right?¡± He sized Zachary up and felt that Zachary¡¯s body could match his. He smiled andmented, ¡°If you have a problem and can¡¯t have a baby, then many men will have to see the doctor.¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine, but I can¡¯t give birth to a baby, so I can only team up with my wife and let her give birth to our child.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Duncan smiled. ¡°If Serenity-¡± ¡°She¡¯s fine as well. She¡¯s just stressed, but my family hasn¡¯t pressured her to have a baby either. She¡¯s just¡­¡± Zachary continued after some thought, ¡°Perhaps I¡¯m the one who¡¯s giving her the pressure. She¡¯s forced to face this invisible pressure now that we¡¯re married.¡± Zachary took out his phone and called Josh. Once Josh picked up, he instructed, ¡°Josh, help me publish a rification statement. My wife isn¡¯t pregnant yet because we want to spend more time together as a couple. We don¡¯t want a baby to disturb our sweet life just yet, so we¡¯re not in a hurry to have a child. ¡°That day, we went to the hospital because I thought she had identally conceived, but we found out after a checkup that she wasn¡¯t pregnant. My wife told me that she wanted to have a child, but I still wanted to spend time together with her as husband and wife, so we had a little disagreement ¡°That¡¯s what it should roughly mean. Help me thank everyone for their concern. There¡¯s nothing wrong with our bodies, and we¡¯re fine. I¡¯m just overbearing and want to have Serenity to myself, so I can¡¯t bear to share her with someone else. Even if that person is our child, I¡¯ll be jealous!¡± Josh was quick to agree to it. ¡°I¡¯ll immediately publish a rification statement for you. Do you still want me to look into the trending news?¡± ¡°Yes!¡± Zachary said in a low and cold voice, ¡°Tell those people to stay out of my private affairs!¡± Who were those entertainment journalists to care about his private matters when not even his family did? After ending another call with Josh, Zachary¡¯s phone rang. This time, it was Clive who called. ¡°Zachary, I just saw the trending topic. Is something wrong with you?¡± Zachary was speechless. He could tell that his sworn enemy was teasing him. If Clive was not Serenity¡¯s cousin, the man himself would definitely beughing at this moment. ¡°You¡¯re the one with problems!¡± Zachary retorted with a dark face, ¡°I¡¯m fine!¡± Clive held back hisughter and graciously said, ¡°We¡¯re both men. If something is wrong with you, do tell. I won¡¯tugh at you. I know a few doctors who specialize in treating infertile men. Do you want me to introduce them to you?¡± Zachary had once cared for Clive the same way when Clive¡¯s wife was not yet pregnant. Now, it was Clive¡¯s turn to care for him. ¡°I¡¯m your cousin, after all. I want you and Serenity to be well, and I also want to be promoted to bing an uncle soon. Zachary, although we don¡¯t like each other, I genuinely want to help you. Is something wrong with you? You can¡¯t hide it at such a time and should get treated if you¡¯re unwell!¡± ¡°Clive, I am not unwell! I¡¯m in perfect health! Seren is fine too!¡± ¡°Of course I know Serenity is fine. My cousin looks like someone who is in good health and is very fertile. It must be your problem that she hasn¡¯t gotten pregnant even after so long.¡± Chapter 1411 Chapter 1411 Chapter 1411 Clive defended his cousin and pushed all the me onto Zachary, Zachary wanted to ride on the radio waves to strangle Clive ¡°I¡¯m telling you again, I¡¯m fine! There¡¯s no problem with me. Thank you for your concern!¡± He hung up the phone. Unexpectedly, the phone rang again. He thought it was Clive, answered it without looking, and yelled, ¡°I told you there¡¯s no problem with me, Clive!¡± ¡°Mr. York¡­ It¡¯s me, Remy.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression softened. ¡°Remy?¡± ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s me. How is Ms. Hunt?¡± ¡°Her life is no longer in danger. Thank you for your concern, Remy.¡± Remy said, ¡°That¡¯s a relief. Mr. York, you mentioned something about a problem? I know a miracle. healer. If you need to see one, I can introduce him to you the next time I see him. He can help take a look at you.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Zachary was speechless. He took a deep breath in, breathed out, and forced himself not to get angry at Remy. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Remy. It was a cock-and-bull story made up by the paparazzi. My wife and I are very well. We haven¡¯t had a child this long after marriage because I don¡¯t want to share my wife with other. people, not even our child.¡± Remyughed. ¡°I understand. It¡¯s good that you¡¯re well. That miracle healer is quite close to my family, so just tell me if you need him in the future. I¡¯ll introduce you to each other.¡± ¡°Thank you for your concern.¡± Remy could hear Zachary almost grinding his teeth and controlling his temper, so he sensibly. hung up the call. In addition to Clive and Remy calling to ask about Zachary, a few other heads ofpanies who had a good friendship with him also called one after another to show concern over his health. Each one of them said that they knew good doctors and could introduce them to Zachary. They. told Zachary to see a doctor instead of avoiding one. They even said stuff like ¡°some men look tall and strong, but they actually have small problems¡±, further infuriating Zachary. However, they were all but concerned for him, so he could not lose his temper with them. In the end, after answering too many calls and not charging his phone yesterday, it automatically shut down as the battery went t. Zachary¡¯s ears finally quietened down. ¡°Duncan, lend me your phone.¡± Zachary borrowed Duncan¡¯s phone to call the driver and asked him to send a charger up for him. Then, he returned the phone to Duncan. Duncan looked from the side as his friend was smothered by concern over his health and stifled. his laughter. Zachary shot him a look and snapped, ¡°Go ahead andugh. They say that some men look tall and. strong, but unable to have children. Duncan, you fit the description, but can you have children? They introduced so many doctors to me and gave me various methods and ideas. Do you want. me to introduce you to those doctors too?¡± Duncan released his guffaw. He said amid hisughter, ¡°Thank you for the offer, but what do I have to fear? I have Sonny. Even if I have a problem, Sonny is enough for me. I like Sonny.¡± Zachary was speechless. Duncan just realized his feelings and had not started making his move, but he already tucked Sonny under his wing. He thought of Sonny as his own. The sound of high heels resounded. The two men instinctively looked over and saw Mrs. Lewis. Chapter 1412 Chapter 1412 Chapter 1412 Duncan frowned when he saw his mother. He felt that his mother¡¯s visit to the hospital was not a good thing. Mrs. Lewis saw the two men standing at the door of the ward and walked straight over. ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± Zachary greeted her politely. Mrs. Lewis smiled gently and responded to his greeting. The way she looked at Zachary made him ufortable. He knew what that look meant. Even if he told Josh to take down the trending search immediately, she had most likely seen it. Those who should not see it would have probably seen it. There might be many people who took screenshots too.. There was no question about it. Mrs. Lewis was looking at him in concern because she saw the trending search. Those damned paparazzi just had to expose every little thing. In the past, tabloids did not dare reveal information about his private affairs without his permission. Now that he was married and appeared softer, did they think they could appeal to Serenity for mercy and escape disaster if they exposed his private life? ¡°Zachary, my husband knows several good doctors. Do you want¡­¡± ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Lewis, but I don¡¯t need a doctor. Everything was nonsense. Both Seren and I are very healthy. We don¡¯t want a child so soon because we still want to spend time with each other alone. We went to the hospital that day because I thought Seren got pregnant identally, so we went to check. However, we ended up arguing a little because she wanted a child but I didn¡¯t. We weren¡¯t arguing because of the reason the reporters wrote.¡± Mrs. Lewis nodded. ¡°I see, that¡¯s what I thought. Your wife and you both look healthy. There¡¯s not way you two have any problems. If there was any, Mrs. Stone would be more anxious than anyone. else.¡± Audrey cared deeply for her two nieces, especially Serenity who married into the York family. If Serenity could not get pregnant, Audrey would be more worried than anyone else. Mrs. Lewis looked at her youngest son but did not say anything. She asked Zachary, ¡°Is Liberty inside? Can I go in and see her?¡± Zachary nodded. He led Mrs. Lewis inside. Serenity heard someone approaching and turned to look. She stood up when she saw Zachary taking Mrs. Lewis in. ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± ¡°Serenity, I came to see your sister. How is she?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked gently and with concern. Serenity stepped aside for Mrs. Lewis to see her sister. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. As Mrs. Lewis approached, she saw Liberty¡¯s pale face with her arm wrapped in gauze. She knew that Liberty suffered knife wounds on her arm. Then, she looked at Sonny, who waspletely unharmed. This was a mother¡¯s love. She asked about Liberty and Sonny¡¯s condition with concern. After a while, she changed the subject and said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity, Zachary and you are taking care of your sister, so you don¡¯t need Duncan to stay, right? He looks haggard, so I want to take him home to rest. He has helped enough as a friend.¡± ¡°Mom!¡± Duncan already had a bad feeling about his mothering. It turned out that she wanted to take him home personally. Serenity quickly said, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, we tried persuading Mr. Lewis to go back and rest. It¡¯s enough for me and Zachary to stay and look after my sister. My aunt and Elisa will probablye over in the afternoon to take over for us. I¡¯m very grateful to Mr. Lewis for his help. When my sister is discharged from the hospital, I¡¯ll definitelye bearing gifts to show my gratitude.¡± Mrs. Lewis said in a warm voice, ¡°Friends should help each other. Duncan is friends with Zachary and a righteous person, so he won¡¯t sit back and do nothing. It¡¯s just that as a mother, it hurts at little to see him like this. Well then, I¡¯ll take Duncan back first. You two take care as well.¡± Chapter 1413 Chapter 1413 Chapter 1413 Since Mrs. Lewis came all the way and said such words, Duncan could not stay any longer. Serenity personally escorted Mrs. Lewis out of the ward. She stood at the door of the ward and watched Mrs. Lewis and Duncan walk away. After a long time, she sighed and turned back in with Zachary. She looked at her sleeping sister with worry. Zachary held her shoulder andforted her in a low voice, ¡°Seren, everything will be fine. We don¡¯t have to worry too much.¡± As long as Duncan realized his feelings, Zachary believed that he could convince his parents to let him be together with Liberty. ¡°Besides, your sister isn¡¯t interested in Duncan in that way. Duncan liking your sister is his. business, and there¡¯s no guarantee that your sister will ept him. Let¡¯s see how it goes for now.¡± Serenity leaned on his shoulder and said softly, ¡°Putting aside Mr. Lewis¡¯s status, he¡¯s a good man. If my sister wants to remarry, I¡¯m very much in favor of them getting together, not because of Mr. Lewis¡¯s status but his sense of responsibility.¡± Duncan and Hank were two different kinds of people. ¡°You¡¯re right, but it¡¯s still too early to talk about that. Liberty hasn¡¯t even thought of remarrying.¡¯ Now, Serenity just wanted her sister to get better. There was no need to rush emotional matters. Although Mrs. Lewis took her youngest son out of the hospital, she did not let him drive. The mother and son rode in the same car back home while Duncan¡¯s car was driven by his bodyguard. Her expression was dark along the way. She looked at Duncan and saw his calm expression. It was as if he would be unfazed even if the sky were to fall. Mrs. Lewis grew angry at that face. She could not help but p Duncan¡¯s arm. Duncan looked at his mother in dismay upon being hit and asked in confusion, ¡°Why did you hit me, Mom? Were you trying to hit arge mosquito on my arm?¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong with you? You never bat an eye on any of thedies in our circle, but you took al fancy to a divorcee like Liberty instead! Putting aside the fact that she has a son, even if she hasn¡¯t married before, I still won¡¯t ept her as my daughter-inw.¡± In the end, her greatest fear came true. The problemy with her son. Liberty had no interest in Duncan. Mrs. Lewis was furious and wanted to scold someone. She wanted to do something to Liberty, but Liberty could not be med for this matter. No matter how proud she was, she was a reasonable woman. Since the problem was with her son, she could only direct her anger at him. If she went to Liberty, Liberty might even ask her to take care of her son. Duncan said, ¡°I think I have a good eye. Liberty is a good woman, so I took a fancy to her. What¡¯s wrong with that? So what if she¡¯s a divorced single mother? At first, I was just in it for Sonny. That child is cute and clever, just like me¡­¡± His mother smacked him again before he could finish his sentence. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Mrs. Lewis yelled, ¡°Where¡¯s your shame? Do you even feel shameful? Sonny¡¯sst name is Brown. How could Sonny Brown be just like you? Bah, you¡¯re shameless! If he really was your flesh and blood, for the sake of my grandson, I¡¯d ept Liberty no matter how much I dislike her, but is Sonny yours?¡± Duncan grumbled, ¡°I just said that Sonny is smart like me. I didn¡¯t say that he was mine. I wish he was, but unfortunately, he isn¡¯t. However, it¡¯s fine. It¡¯s the same if I be his stepdad. A stepdad is also a dad. If I treat him well, he¡¯ll ept me as his father.¡± Chapter 1414 Chapter 1414 Chapter 1414 Mrs. Lewis felt like she was going to explode from anger. They were not together yet, but Duncan already wanted to be Sonny¡¯s father. Was Hank dead? ¡°Duncan, I¡¯m telling you, I don¡¯t ept Liberty. I won¡¯t allow you to be with her! She¡¯s divorced and has a child. You¡¯re frompletely different worlds. The right person for you is a strong and capable woman from an influential family, someone like Lily. ¡°Putting aside the Lewis family, even if we just look at your own achievements, don¡¯t you think that Liberty is still unworthy of you? ¡°You¡¯re the CEO of Lewis & Co., and she¡¯s just the owner of a small breakfast diner. Even the store she rents belongs to you. You two are worlds apart. That¡¯s not me looking down on her. It¡¯s the truth. Duncan, both families have to be well-matched in social status in a marriage. You and Liberty are not suitable for each other. ¡°You should give up on her and go out with Lily. Didn¡¯t you have a great time chatting with her during the Marshall family¡¯s banquet? When you danced together, you were like a match made in heaven.¡± Duncan left his family so that they could not control him. Thus, when it came to marriage, he naturally only considered his own feelings and did not want to be bound by his family and parents. He said firmly, ¡°Mom, it¡¯s my marriage and my decision. I¡¯m the one marrying someone, not you. If I think Liberty is suitable for me, then she is. I don¡¯t think she¡¯s unworthy of me. If anything, I¡¯m the unworthy one. I¡¯m old and ugly. Besides having more money than she does, in what way am I better than her? ¡°Even if she¡¯s divorced, she¡¯s several years younger than me. She¡¯s like a blooming flower at the peak of its beauty now. As for me, my face is fierce and full of scars. I can scare a child to tears even without makeup, and I¡¯m almost forty. I¡¯m not worthy of her.¡± Mrs. Lewis reached out to pinch his face. ¡°Your face is fierce? Which part is fierce? Even if you have scars, you¡¯re still handsome! Do you think I¡¯ll give you two my blessings if you put yourself down? In your dreams!¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Why would I need your approval for my business? If you like Liberty and can ept her, we¡¯ll bring Sonny home often to see you and keep youpany after we get married. If you don¡¯t like her, the three of us can live happily in one of the many houses I have. We won¡¯t affect you.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. Duncan was used to being independent. He felt that his liking for Liberty was his business. Whether or not he could marry Liberty in the future was also his business. There was no need for his parents to interfere. If his parents could ept her, he would bring her home often to apany them. If they could not ept her, he would go back himself. He would not take his wife and child back to be disdained by his parents. In short, his marriage, his decision! ¡°Besides, Liberty still doesn¡¯t like me. Look at your son, Mom. Even Liberty doesn¡¯t like me. How can you disdain her? If there¡¯s anyone you should disdain, it¡¯s me. If Liberty is willing to ept me, marry me, and put an end to my life as a bachelor, you should be grateful to her instead. ¡°Your undesirable youngest son will finally be sold off, so you should give Liberty lots and lots of money as payment to prevent her from returning the goods.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. She red at her son and opened her mouth several times to say something, but no words came out. She was furious. This son could really piss her off to the point of vomiting blood. ¡°Mom, I just don¡¯t feel a spark with Lily. You can¡¯t force emotions. I don¡¯t love Lily, so I won¡¯t force myself to be with her. You should talk to Lily and stop wasting her time.¡± Mrs. Lewis stared at him for a long time before saying, ¡°Unless hell freezes over and pigs start to fly, I¡¯ll never agree to you and Liberty being together!¡± Chapter 1415 Chapter 1415 Chapter 1415 Duncan did not care how adamant his mother was and said with a smile, ¡°Mom, you should worry about whether your son can win over Liberty first.¡± Liberty suffered in her first marriage and no longer longed for love. She would not be easy to pursue. Mrs. Lewis said angrily, ¡°Are you really going to pursue her?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t know my feelings before, but when I found out that Liberty got injured, I was so afraid and heartbroken. Although I¡¯m rough and not as attentive as Josh, I¡¯m not stupid. I know that this is This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. care-this is love! ¡°I care about Liberty and like her! Since I like her, I have to pursue her. I can¡¯t just secretly harbor feelings for her while waiting for her to take the initiative to marry me. That¡¯s wishful thinking.¡± Mrs. Lewis pped him and warned, ¡°Duncan Lewis, I¡¯m officially warning you now. You¡¯re not allowed to pursue Liberty. Otherwise, don¡¯t me me for taking action.¡± ¡°Love that has braved through storms willst longer. Mom, you cane at me if you¡¯re dissatisfied, but don¡¯t go after Liberty. If you harm her, our rtionship with the York and Stone families will be over. Think about it. ¡°How detrimental will it be if our familypletely falls out with the two most influential families in Wiltspoon? Besides, you stopping me won¡¯t make me give up on her. I won¡¯t go along with your arrangements, so don¡¯t think about controlling me. Mrs. Lewis was speechless. She was so angry that she could do nothing but just re at him. Her son was hyper-independent. When he was young and impetuous, that independence was disobedience in the eyes of his parents. He was too opinionated and unwilling to listen to the words of others. He did whatever he pleased. It was like how he, the fourth young master of the Lewis family, went and became a gangster. If his grandmother¡¯s death had not dragged him back, he might have be a mob boss in the underworld by now. Most children lived under the protection of their families and needed a hand from their families to start a business. However, Duncan did not want help from his family. He relied on his friendship with Zachary to borrow a start-up capital, then established Lewis & Co. step by step. He grew hispany stronger and more powerful with his capability and sessfully squeezed into the ranks of the toppanies in Wiltspoon, with a worth of tens of billions. Lewis & Co. did not have any dealings with the Lewis family business. He worked closely with York Corporation and manyrgepanies in other regions and cities. In short, he did not listen to his parents and did not like them paving the way for him. When Duncan saw his mother at a loss for words, he leaned backfortably, closed his eyes, and said, ¡°Wake me up when we reach home, Mom. I¡¯m taking a nap.¡± He did not sleep a wink all night, so it was natural for him to be tired. However, he was unable to sleepst night. He was worried about Liberty.. He even thought about what he would do if Liberty never woke up. When did he begin to like her? He had known Liberty for half a year, but he really had no clue as to when he became interested in that once plump woman. Maybe his heart was moved as he watched her transform her physique to the beautiful woman she was today. Regardless of when he started liking her, since he had feelings for her now, he would pursue her. Would Liberty drive him out of her breakfast diner with her spat after he confessed to her? Would she forbid him froming in for breakfast again in the future? Duncan was a little worried. He had to think of a way to let Liberty jump into his arms step by step until she was unable to struggle against him and had no choice but to give in. ¡°You deserve to be tired. She has her sister, brother-inw, and so many people to take care of her. She didn¡¯t need you to stay there all night. You reap what you sow.¡± Mrs. Lewis snapped at her son. Duncan said nonchntly, ¡°I reap what I sow, but did it willingly. I was the first one to see her wake up. Seeing her awake and watching her being pushed out of the ICU made me happier than cinching a deal worth hundreds of millions.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. Duncan soon fell asleep in the car. Mrs. Lewis looked at her sleeping son and felt angry, distressed, and helpless. Chapter 1416 Chapter 1416 Chapter 1416 After returning to the Lewis residence, Mrs. Lewis did not want to wake her son up. However, she could not carry her son as she did when he was a child, so she had no choice but to wake him up. ¡°Duncan, we¡¯re home. Wake up.¡± Duncan only woke up after a few nudges from his mother. He was still a bit dazed when he opened his eyes. He looked at his mother for a while beforeing to his senses and getting out of the car. Lily just came back from outside. The car she drove was lent to her by Mrs. Lewis. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, Duncan,¡± Lily greeted as she got out of the car. The two of them got along well at the Marshall family¡¯s banquet. She thought that was the beginning of her good rtionship with Duncan, so she was friendlier with him. ¡°Lily, where did you go?¡± Mrs. Lewis was full of smiles when facing Lily. She really liked Lily and wanted Lily to be her youngest daughter-inw. Her best friend thought the same, and the two family¡¯s elders were all looking forward to it. Mrs. Lewis just did not understand why her son did not like Lily despite thetter being better than Liberty in every way. What was wrong with her youngest son? He did not want any of the desirable youngdies in their circle, and chose a divorced woman instead! If she let Liberty marry into the Lewis family, they would be aughingstock. It would be a p to the face to the many youngdies from affluent families. ¡°I went shopping and bought many things back.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Lily got along well with everyone in the Lewis family. Duncan¡¯s little nephews liked Lily and asked his mother privately if Lily would be his wife in the future. Lily took the clothes, cosmetic products, and other things she bought out of the car as she spoke. She called out, ¡°Duncan, help me out with the bags. I bought several sets of clothes for you. Have a look and see if you like themter. The sizes should be correct since I asked Mrs. Lewis for them.¡± Duncan had walked several feet away when Lily called out to lum. Mrs. Lewis went up to pull him back and pushed him to help Lily with the bags. Duncan nced at the stuff that Lily bought. There were many bags of various sizes. ¡°I¡¯ll send someone to help you.¡± Duncan did not help Lily but turned around and left again. After he went into the house, servants soon came out to help Lily with the bags. Mrs. Lewis was furious by his actions. Although Lily was a little embarrassed, she did not say anything and soon returned to normal. ¡°Lily, don¡¯t worry about what that boy says or does. He deserves to be beaten up,¡± Mrs. Lewis. comforted. ¡°I¡¯m fine, Mrs. Lewis. Duncan left to call someone to help me carry the bags. I¡¯m happy enough with that,¡± Lily said tacitly. ¡°That brat is going to be the death of me. Lily, you have to worry harder and defeat that divorced woman!¡± Chapter 1417 Chapter 1417 Chapter 1417 Lily looked at Mrs Lewis This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Mrs. Lewis asked the servants to carry all the things that Lily bought into the house while she took Lily for a walk around the yard She sighed as she walked. ¡°Tell me what¡¯s on your mind, Mrs. Lewis. Maybe I can help. Don¡¯t sigh. There are many people. around you to support you.¡± Mrs. Lewis took Lily¡¯s hand and looked at her, saying, ¡°Lity, you¡¯re a capable and understanding girl. You can take care of both your work and family at home, and you also dominate the business world in my eyes, you¡¯re the ideal daughter-inw. ¡°I really don¡¯t know what¡¯s wrong with Duncan¡¯s eyes. How can he have feelings for Liberty? Our greatest worry came true Liberty got injured, and he stayed in the hospital all night to watch over her. He only came back now to rest because I dragged him out.. ¡°On the way back, he also admitted that he cared about Liberty and liked her too. Lily, you have to fight harder. You¡¯re superior to Liberty in every way, so you have to defeat her. In short, I only want you. As long as I¡¯m alive, I will never allow Liberty to marry into the Lewis family!¡± Lily was both surprised and not surprised. She and Mrs. Lewis had already guessed it. Mrs. Lewis even went to test Liberty but found out that Liberty did not like Duncan. ¡°Has Duncan confessed to Liberty?¡± Lily asked calmly. ¡°No, he only realized his feelings when he saw Liberty hurt.¡± Lily smiled and said, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, this is between the three of us, so let us take care of it. I¡¯ll work hard I can¡¯t guarantee that I can win Duncan over, but I can promise that I¡¯ll try my best to pursue my happiness. ¡°Don¡¯t do anything behind the scenes to hurt Liberty if I win, I want to win fair and square * Lily had known Mrs. Lewis for a long time and understood thetter. Mrs. Lewis was a bit overbearing and looked down on Liberty. Since she could not do anything to her son, she might really act against Liberty Lily was not the kind of person who was unable to ept defeat. When she first joined herpany, she started from the bottom and did many things that made her feel like a failure Facing failure was not scary at all. After all, experiences gained were learned from failures She could improve and seed the next time Thus, Lily would be able to ept it if she failed to pursue Duncan and lost to Liberty. If she won, she wanted it to be fair and square, if she lost, she wanted it to be on her merit. Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°Lily, you¡¯re such a great person. Why doesn¡¯t Duncan like you?¡± ¡°Apples and oranges-everyone has different tastes. I might not be Duncan¡¯s type, or I came toote and let Duncan take a liking to Liberty first.¡± Lily added, ¡°Don¡¯t frown, Mrs. Lewis. Duncan is almost forty. He knows what he wants. ¡°I¡¯ll work hard, but don¡¯t hold too much hope for me. In any case, I¡¯ll try my best.¡± Mrs. Lewis was even more reluctant now. Her son must be blind not to like such a sensible girl. If she had another son, she would force that son to marry Lily. ¡°Duncan is stubborn. He¡¯s hard-nosed and doesn¡¯t listen to others.¡± Mrs. Lewis felt that her youngest son waspletely out of her control. When Duncan started his business more than ten years ago, he would rather borrow money from Zachary and the bank than ask his family. He just did not want to rely on his family and let them have a hold over him. In the past, they saw their son¡¯s willingness to start a business and thought that he was finally being sensible, so they let him work it out on his own. Now that he was used to being independent, Mrs. Lewis realized that as a mother, she could not do anything about her headstrong son. Lily did not respond. That was a point she appreciated about Duncan. They were both strong. If they coulde together, it would be a powerful alliance. Of course, if they fall out, it would be disastrous for both parties. Maybe it was because they were both headstrong individuals that Duncan preferred someone gentler like Liberty. The Brown family came again. Chapter 1418 Chapter 1418 Chapter 1418 The York family bodyguards blocked them from entering the ward. ¡°We heard that Liberty woke up and came to see her,¡± Olivia said to the bodyguard with a smile. Serenity did not tell Hank that Liberty woke up. However, the kidnapping was too high-profile, and there were too many people involved. News. about the incident instantly went viral, so everyone in Wiltspoon knew about it.. Naturally, everyone also paid attention to Liberty¡¯s injury. The media found out that her life was no longer in danger and she was released from the ICU. Countless people were moved by her maternal love and prayed for her, hoping that she would. recover. The media reported her oveing the critical period, which was how the Brown family. found out. ¡°As our missus said, Ms. Hunt still needs to recuperate. There shouldn¡¯t be noise disturbing her. It¡¯s enough that you know her life is no longer in danger. There¡¯s no need to go in and disturb her.¡± The one who spoke was Jim. Chelsea said loudly, ¡°We¡¯re just here to see Liberty. We¡¯ll take a look at her and then leave. Get out of the way. We¡¯re going in!¡± ¡°Chelsea.¡± Mr. Brown red at her daughter. Chelsea lowered her voice and muttered, ¡°We¡¯re just worried about Liberty. We don¡¯t have any bad intentions. Can¡¯t we just look at her?¡± At that moment, the door of the ward opened. Serenity stood across them. ¡°Serenity.¡± Upon seeing Serenity, Chelsea quickly said, ¡°Serenity, can we see your sister? Don¡¯t worry, we just want to look at her. We won¡¯t disturb her.¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes skimmed over the Brown family¡¯s faces one by one, and she finally said to Chelsea, ¡°Keep your voices down.¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Liberty heard her former inws in the ward long ago and told her sister to let them in after thinking about it. She knew her former inws very well. If she did not let theme in now, they woulde over and annoy her every day. ¡°Yes, yes, we¡¯ll be very quiet,¡± Chelsea hurriedly promised. Serenity turned around and walked back in. The York family bodyguards did not stop the Brown family from entering the ward anymore. Liberty. Except for Hank, the rest of the Brown family gathered around Liberty¡¯s hospital bed. ¡°Thank goodness you¡¯ve woken up, Liberty.¡± Chelsea and Olivia kept thanking the heavens. ¡°Thank you foring to see me,¡± Liberty spoke softly. ¡°Don¡¯t mention it, it¡¯s the least we could do.¡± Chelsea took out a gift card and gave it to Liberty, saying, ¡°This is from us. You can use the money here to buy something nutritious. Your face is really pale. You have to take care of your body.¡± Liberty¡¯s hands could not move yet, so she could not return the gift card to Chelsea. She gestured to her sister to help her refuse. Serenity took the gift card and shoved it back to Chelsea. ¡°My sister doesn¡¯t need your money.¡± Chapter 1419 Chapter 1419 Chapter 1419 *Serenity, this is a little gift from me. Keep it for your sister. When people visit someone at the hospital, it¡¯s customary to bring a gift.¡± Chelsea brought up the social custom. She insisted that Liberty ept the gift card. Olivia also gave Liberty a gift card. Serenity refused, and in the end, the mother and daughter shoved the gift cards to Sonny and let him hold them. Then, they quickly ran away. Mr. Brown ran along with them, not letting Serenity return the gift cards. Only Hank stood there, watching Liberty awkwardly. Serenity wanted to let Hank take the gift cards away, but Sonny refused to let go. He clung tightly to the cards and said, ¡°Grandmom and Aunt Chelsea gave these to me!¡± Serenity said gently, ¡°Sonny, you have to return these gift cards to them. We don¡¯t want their money.¡± ¡°Grandmom and Aunt Chelsea gave them to me!¡± Sonny refused resolutely. His grandmother and aunt gave him gift cards in the past, but his mother would always exchange them for cash and put it into his piggy bank. Thus, he subconsciously wanted to protect the gift cards that his grandmother and aunt gave him. It was his money! Serenity was speechless. It was her first time finding out that her nephew was a miser. ¡°Take care of yourself, Liberty. I¡¯lle see you again when I¡¯m free.¡± In the end, Hank did not say what he wanted to say and left after uttering somemon. pleasantries. Serenity could not retrieve the two gift cards from her nephew to return to the Brown family. She looked at her sister for help. Liberty¡¯s pale face had a small smile as she said, ¡°Forget it, just ept the gift cards. They¡¯ve given gift cards to Sonny before, so he¡¯s used to receiving these from them. It¡¯s too hard to take them from Sonny¡¯s hands.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Serenity picked up her nephew and gave him a kiss, joking, ¡°Sonny, are you saving up to get a wife in the future?¡± ¡°I¡¯m saving up for Mom. I¡¯m going to save lots and lots of money so that Mom has a big house to live in later.¡± Liberty¡¯s smile deepened. Serenityughed and praised him. ¡°Our Sonny is such a good boy. You even know how to save money to buy a big house for your mom to live in.¡± Sonny struggled out of Serenity¡¯s arms, wanting to sit on the bed. Serenity sat him down and was careful not to let him touch Liberty¡¯s wounds. Sonny presented the two gift cards to his mother. ¡°Here, Mom.¡° ¡°Let your aunt hold onto them for now. I¡¯ll take them back when I get better, okay?¡± Sonny thought about it and nodded. He gave the gift cards to Serenity for temporary safekeeping. ¡°Remember to give them back to me, Aunt Ser.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Are you afraid that I¡¯ll take your money?¡± Sonny looked a little embarrassed and suddenlyy down. However, he was aware enough to avoid touching his mother¡¯s injuries. Hey on his side, facing his mother so that he could be with her. Knock, knock. There was a knock at the door. Jim came in and said respectfully, ¡°Mr. Callum hase with Ms. Newman.¡± ¡°Let them in.¡± Jim responded with affirmation and went back out. Soon, Callum came in with Camryn, carrying a fruit basket and a bouquet of flowers. Camryn walked slowly with the cane in her hand, and Callum walked patiently with her. ¡°Camryn.¡± Serenity stepped forward to assist Camryn. Chapter 1420 Chapter 1420 Chapter 1420 ¡°Thank you,¡± Camryn said to Serenity. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Serenity,¡± Callum greeted. Serenity hummed and helped Camryn sit down in a chair. Callum ced the fruit basket and bouquet on the bedside table and said warmly, ¡°Liberty, these are from Ms. Newman. We wish you a speedy recovery.¡± Liberty thanked them. She did not know Camryn well, but she knew that her sister and Camryn got along with each other. Her sister told her that Camryn was the wife chosen for Callum by his grandmother. Judging by Callum¡¯s attitude toward Camryn, he had epted his grandmother¡¯s arrangement. ¡°Liberty.¡± Camryn faced Liberty. ¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡± She apologized. ¡°Why are you apologizing to me, Ms. Newman?¡± Liberty¡¯s voice was a little weak. After the anesthesia wore off, her wounds and the surgery incisions hurt so much that her face was pale. She could not even raise her voice to speak louder. Camryn said guiltily, ¡°This all started because of me. In order to save me, Serenity lent me a hand, which was why my mother had a grudge against her. That¡¯s why my mother¡­ She has been. arrested and will be punished by thew, but as her family member, it¡¯s my duty toe and. apologize to you.¡± She stood up and said solemnly, ¡°I¡¯m truly sorry, Liberty!¡± ¡°Ms. Newman, I ept your apology. Don¡¯t me yourself. It¡¯s not your fault, nor is it Seren¡¯s fault. It¡¯s those people who were too deranged.¡± Liberty actually did not know who was behind the incident, but she figured it out after Camryn came to apologize. Camryn still felt guilty. Her mother had a grudge against Serenity because thetter helped her. Serenityforted Camryn before asking, ¡°How is your family now?¡± Both Mrs. Newman and Carrie were arrested. After Carrie was sued by Serenity, her sentence was not as heavy as Mrs. Newman¡¯s. Mrs. Newman wanted to save her daughter, but she was impatient and ruthless. Not only did she fail to save her daughter, but also got arrested herself. She thought she could do whatever she wanted with the men her godfather left behind. The consequence of being too arrogant was jail time. It was the nature of a gangster. ¡°My uncle rushed backst night, but there was nothing he could do. He can only hire the best.wyer for my mom, but in my opinion, nothing will change. There are some things that he can¡¯t get away with too. I believe he¡¯ll soon join his wife and daughter in jail.¡± Camryn discussed it with Callum and decided to hand over the recorder to the police. She would report her mother and stepfather for plotting to kill her father. This was the best time to do so since countless people were watching after the crime her mothermitted. If she made a report against them now, the police would definitely investigate it. She could not see and could not collect evidence for the time being, but the police could investigate and help her collect evidence. Callum supported her. He said he would support her no matter what she did. Camryn felt very moved. Their friendship was not deep, but Callum was willing to help her and support her unconditionally, saying that his family raised him well. Camryn believed him. It was the York family who raised Callum to be a good man with a sense of justice. ¡°Evil will never prevail over righteousness. As long as they¡¯ve done something illegal, it¡¯ll be found out.¡± Serenity squeezed Camryn¡¯s hand. ¡°I¡¯m rooting for you!¡± They both understood the underlying meaning in each other¡¯s words. Camryn said gratefully, ¡°Thank you, Serenity. Really, thank you so much. It was my fault that you got involved. I feel guilty every time I think about it. I¡¯m so sorry.¡± ¡°If you need any help in the future, talk to Callum. He¡¯ll help you.¡± Chapter 1421 Chapter 1421 Chapter 1421 After a moment of silence, Camryn said, ¡°It¡¯ll trouble Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t have to call him Mr. Callum. That sounds so distant. Just call him Callum. We¡¯re friends, and he¡¯s my brother-inw. You two have known each other for a while now, so you¡¯re considered friends too.¡± Callum cast a grateful look at his sister-inw. Camryn just smiled and did not answer.. Liberty still needed to rest, so Camryn could not stay too long. After Audrey and Elisa arrived, Camryn and Callum left together. ¡°Seren, you take Sonny and Zachary back for lunch and rest at home in the afternoon. Elisa and I will stay here to watch over your sister, then you two cane back at night to take over.¡± Audrey wanted to watch over Liberty at night too, but she could not win against Serenity. She understood where Serenity wasing from. Her children were also worried that she could not hold on in her old age. Serenity looked at her sister. ¡°Listen to Aunt Audrey, Seren.¡± Liberty said gently, ¡°My heart breaks when I see how haggard you look now. I¡¯m fine. I won¡¯t die. I promised Mom and Dad that I¡¯ll take care of you and Sonny, so I won¡¯t go back on my word. Go back with Sonny and have a rest.¡± Zachary entered the room. He had just gone out to ask Liberty¡¯s attending doctor about her injuries as well as the after-effects. ¡°Aunt Audrey.¡± He still held great respect for Audrey and greeted her politely every time they met. When facing Elisa, he always had to purse his lips before grudgingly greeting her. Elisa knew that this was not the time for her tough, but she could not help it. Zachary was so arrogant that he did not even want to look at her in the past, but now, he had to lower his head and put down his ego to call her name in a pleasing tone. He did not dare look down on her like before. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Elisa felt like she could burst into a song and dance. Zachary turned to his wife after greeting Elisa. He did not want to see Elisa¡¯s smug face. ¡°Listen to your sister, Seren. Let¡¯s go back and rest first. We¡¯ll only be able to watch over Liberty at night after a good rest.¡± Serenity was worried about her sister, but he was worried about Serenity. Under the persuasion of her sister and aunt, Serenity took Sonny and left the hospital with her husband. After leaving the ward, Zachary carried Sonny and said to Serenity, ¡°Let¡¯s go back to the manor. Nana invited a psychic to take a look at Sonny since he was frightened badly.¡± Zachary did not believe in such things. However, his nana insisted on it. There would be no harm done to Sonny anyway, so he let his. nana do as she pleased. Serenity had no objection either. At most, news about it would circte and go viral on the inte again. The trending search about him and Serenity¡¯s inability to conceive was taken down, but his rification statement stayed on top of the topics for the entertainment news. Zachary did not read what theizens said. They could believe whatever they wanted to. He rified because he did not want people to think that there was a problem with Serenity. He also did not want Serenity to feel pressured. Some reporters called his mother, but his mother and his elders expressed their views very clearly. It was up to the young couple to n their own family. They could have a child whenever they wanted. However, Zachary still kept this a secret from Serenity. He did not want her to be bothered by something this trivial when she was already worried sick about her sister. Chapter 1422 Chapter 1422 Chapter 1422 Serenity felt that it was her fault for not being by her sister¡¯s side because of the argument she had with him. How would she feel if she found out that her fertility was being talked about online 100? ¡°Okay, let¡¯s go back to the manor. Nana said that Sonny was frightened too badly and should be looked at by a psychic. My mom said I was often looked at by psychics when I was a kid too.¡± After getting in the car, Zachary said, ¡°I don¡¯t know when Nana started being so superstitious. That psychic also looked into our fate and said that we were destined to be husband and wife. That¡¯s why Nana tried her best to get us together.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°That was the reason? I thought it was because Nana liked my character, but it turns out I was wrong-it was a psychic who brought us together.¡± Zachary held Sonny¡¯s hand in one hand and grabbed hers with the other. ¡°This psychic is pretty. good.¡± He was right to say that Zachary and Serenity were destined to be husband and wife. They were a married couple now. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Unfortunately, they were only destined to be married in this life. Zachary hoped to be married to Serenity for all of his future lives. However, a person only lived one life. Being married for this lifetime was enough. ¡°Nana also wanted the psychic to look at the geomancy of our house, but he said that looking at. energy isn¡¯t his specialty. He told us to look for another diviner.¡± The York family was unable to give birth to a daughter. Zachary mentioned to his nana that it could be a problem with the energy in their living spaces. That was why his nana invited the psychic over. The psychic was quite urate in telling people¡¯s fortunes, but he did not specialize in reading energies. A diviner was invited to Wildridge Manor to see if there were any problems, but none were found. However, the psychic told Grandma May that when he looked into Zachary and Serenity¡¯s fortunes, he saw that they were destined to have a son and a daughter. Zachary remembered how his nana grinned happily when telling him this. Who would not want a son and a daughter? Without a doubt, he wanted them. ¡°What¡¯s on your mind?¡± Serenity sensed his changing thoughts and asked curiously. She left his embrace to look at him. Sonny learned from his aunt and also looked up at Zachary. The psychic said that we¡¯re destined to have a son and a daughter, so you should stop worrying about children, Seren. If we¡¯re destined to have children, they¡¯lle eventually. If something is meant to happen, it will.¡± Serenity was silent for a long time before sighing. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll stop thinking about a child.¡± No matter whether the psychic was only saying words pleasant to the ears, or he genuinely knew how to tell fortunes and saw the children Zachary and she would have, she did not want to put pressure on herself anymore. ¡°Are you sleepy, Sonny? Lean on me and sleep a little.¡± Zachary bowed his head and gently coaxed Sonny. Sonny nestled in his arms and said, ¡°I don¡¯t dare sleep, Uncle Zack. It¡¯s scary.¡± He kept dreaming of his mother covered in blood. Zachary hugged him tightly. ¡°Don¡¯t be scared. You don¡¯t have to be scared of anything with Uncle Zack around. Your aunt will wake you up to eat when we reach home, and then we¡¯ll continue to sleep. We¡¯ll go stay with your mom at night, okay?¡± Sonny nodded obediently. He felt safe in his Uncle Zack¡¯s arms. Sonny said he was scared and did not dare sleep, but he fell asleep quickly. He did not sleep well the past two days. He was still a three-year-old kid after all, so he was at his limit. However, he continued to have nightmares and woke up several times on the way back to Wildridge Manor. He awakened in tears each time, breaking Serenity¡¯s and Zachary¡¯s hearts every time. Zachary told the driver to speed up, wanting to return to the manor immediately. They would let the psychic look at Sonny. Chapter 1423 Chapter 1423 Chapter 1423 In the meantime, after leaving the hospital, Callum did not send Camryn back to Spring Blossoms but went to Willspoon Hotel instead. He said, ¡°I apanied you to the hospital, so lunch is your treat.¡± Camryn, who was thinking about something else, was instantly speechless. He always made her buy him meals! She looked at Callum and asked calmly, ¡°Where do you want to eat?¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I think¡­¡± His cell phone rang before he could finish, interrupting what he was about to say. There was no caller ID saved to the number, but he recognized it. It was from Mr. Newman. ¡°Your uncle is calling,¡± Callum said to Camryn. Camryn frowned and then said calmly, ¡°I think he¡¯s anxious and wants you to help.¡± Mr. Newman was indeed feeling uneasy. He was also fearful. His wife and he were tied to the same boat. Although most of it was obviously his wife¡¯s doing, he could not escape being scrutinized and investigated. He would not be able to get away if the police investigated deeper. His wife and he worked so hard to get to where they were today, but they had a feeling that everything would go down the drain. How could he not be anxious? In his heart, he resented his wife for not listening to him. He advised his wife countless times not to fight with Zachary and Serenity. Even if they had billions worth in assets, they were no match against the York family. If Carrie was sentenced to jail, then so be it. As long as they were still alive and free, they could arrange a good path for their daughter when she was released from prison. Carrie hired thugs to harm Serenity but failed. It was a vicious scheme, but Serenity knew self- defense and there were bodyguards from the York family secretly protecting her, so the consequences were not horrible. Otherwise, Carrie would be heavily sentenced. Now, she was convicted to only serve a few years in prison. Carrie was young and would still be in her twenties after serving jail time. Although it was not honorable to have gone to jail, their daughter broke thew and they had no way of getting. Serenity to drop charges, so they could only ept the legal sanctions. Mr. Newman always tried very hard to convince his wife to let go of her grudge. However, Mrs. Newman¡¯s most beloved child was Carrie. Although she also loved her son, she felt that her son was unlike her because he helped Camryn. Her love for her son could not be She could not ept that her daughter would be imprisoned for several years. She hated Serenity! She wanted to get revenge on Serenity. She wanted Serenity to suffer a fate worse than death and repent! However, she did not expect to have failed to grab Sonny even after mobilizing so many men. In a turn of events, she and her forces were captured. Mrs. Newman onlyprehended the situation the moment she was taken away by the police. The police already cast out arge for her and were just waiting for her to throw herself into. the. It was also at that moment that Mrs. Newman regretted not listening to her husband¡¯s advice. She thought she did not have to fear Zachary with her forces¡­ However, as strong as a person was, there would always be someone stronger. Zachary happened to be more powerful than she was. Mr. Newman knew that his wife would be sentenced severely after getting captured. His wife was involved in the underworld. Not only did shemit a heinous crime, but she also harmed someone. Mr. Newman could not see his wife now. Only herwyer had the right to see her whereas he could not visit her until she was sentenced. He felt like the Newman family copsed overnight. Mr. Newman waspletely overwhelmed. ¡°I¡¯m driving now, so it¡¯s not convenient for me to answer the phone. You can answer it for me.¡± Chapter 1424 Chapter 1424 Chapter 1424 Callum spoke to Camryn. He swiped the answer icon before Camryn could respond and shoved the phone to her. ¡°Hurry up and take the phone unless you want us to die together in an ident.¡± Camryn had no choice but to take the phone from him. Mr. Newman called out pleasingly from the phone, ¡°Mr. Callum, are you free? I¡¯d like to treat you to lunch.¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Camryn brought the phone to her ear. When she heard her stepfather¡¯s question, she said softly,¡± Mr. Callum is driving now, Uncle. He can¡¯t answer the phone.¡± ¡°Camryn? You¡¯re with Mr. Callum? Okay, tell him that I¡¯d like to invite him to lunch and ask if he¡¯s avable. You cane with him too.¡± Mr. Newman¡¯s tone was gentle when he heard his niece¡¯s voice and realized that she was with Callum. ¡°Mr. Callum, my uncle said he wants to invite you to lunch. He asked if you¡¯re avable.¡± ¡°Sure, I am. We¡¯re going to lunch right now, aren¡¯t we? Tell Mr. Newman that we¡¯ll wait for him at Wiltspoon Hotel. Tell him toe quickly.¡± He could not make Camryn take out her wallet today. Either way, he could try again another day. He had a lifetime left to leech off her. It was not easy for Camryn to earn money. Every time she treated him to a meal, she always. looked regretful at spending money. However, it was that regret that amused Callum. He liked making her pay for their meals and watching her pretend to be generous despite being in pain. If Camryn could hear his thoughts, she would say, ¡°I don¡¯t want to spend my lifetime with you¡­¡± ¡°Uncle, did you hear what Mr. Callum said?¡± Mr. Newman answered, ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll go to Wiltspoon Hotel now.¡± Then, he quickly hung up the phone. Camryn returned the phone to Callum. Callum teased her while driving, ¡°Your uncle came to me for my help. He most likely wants to ask. me to be responsible for you and marry you off to me. Would you be willing?¡± Camryn was silent. ¡°Old Mr. Marshall already sent that b*stard who tried to molest you to jail. Your mom found him. after considering the Marshall family¡¯s reputation in Wiltspoon. Even Zachary has to show respect to the Marshalls. ¡°The main family of the Marshalls is very decent but has no friendship with your mother, so she had no choice but to find a very distant rtive to give you away as a ything.¡± This was the result of Callum¡¯s investigation. Back then, he beat the man up ck and blue without knowing who the man was. It was only after investigating that he found out that the man was from the Marshall family. Old Mr. Marshall even thanked him for helping to uncover the scum in the family. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn could do nothing else but expressed her gratitude. ¡°Keep track of how many meals you owe me and cook for me every day when your eyes are cured.¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°Are you¡­ hiring me as a chef?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you need to marry me? I don¡¯t need a chef. I need a wife. Isn¡¯t it normal for wives to cook. for their husbands? ¡°If you don¡¯t know how to cook, it¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll cook instead. Thanks to my nana, all my cousins and I can cook. Our skills are first-ss.¡± No matter how mild-tempered Camryn was, her expression could not help but darken. ¡°Mr. York, I never said I would marry you!¡± They were not even dating! Callum smiled and said, ¡°Your uncle told me to marry you and bear the responsibility of you.¡± ¡°He has no say in my marriage!¡± Callum looked at her and asked, ¡°Do you refuse to marry me because you think I¡¯m ugly?¡± Chapter 1425 Chapter 1425 Chapter 1425 Camryn held back her anger and said, ¡°I don¡¯t know what you look like, Mr. Callum. How could I dislike you for being ugly? ¡°Marriage is an important event, Mr. Callum. We¡¯re not ying house. We¡¯re just friends at best and not even a couple. How can you talk about marriage?¡± Callum did not answer immediately. Just when Camryn thought that she persuaded him, he said gently, ¡°You don¡¯t have to be a couple to get married. Zachary saw Serenity for the first time when they got their marriage license, and they¡¯re doing great now. They¡¯re so sweet to each other that I¡¯m envious.¡± Camryn was speechless. Zachary got married to Serenity all of a sudden, but were all the men of the York family going to follow in his footsteps? Or did they want to learn from Zachary because they were too busy and could not be bothered to date? Callum said, ¡°If you want to be a couple first, that¡¯s easy. I¡¯ll be your boyfriend. We¡¯re a couple now.¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°Don¡¯t you have to ask for my permission, Mr. Callum?¡± ¡°Okay. Do you agree?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not worthy of you. Please stop teasing me.¡± From the first time they met, Camryn felt that Callum was deliberately approaching her. However, she could not understand why. She considered the possibility of Callum liking her, but she denied it herself. She was blind, and Callum was a man from the Yorks. No matter how open¨Cminded their elders. were, how could they ept a blind person? ¡°Why aren¡¯t you worthy of me? I¡¯ll change so that we¡¯re well¨Cmatched.¡± From the moment Callum got Camryn¡¯s photo, he knew that no matter how much he disliked it, he would still marry her in the end as his nana wished. Since he could not escape, he treated Camryn as his wife. ¡°I¡¯m blind.¡± Callumughed. ¡°Oh, that? I can¡¯t poke my eyes out to make myself blind as well, but I can ask the best doctors to cure your eyes. That¡¯s not a problem. What other problems are there?¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, I don¡¯t exist in my family. You won¡¯t get any benefits from marrying me.¡± ¡°So what if you don¡¯t exist in your family? You won¡¯t be staying with them after marrying me. You¡¯ll be staying with me instead. As long as you exist, I won¡¯t let you be neglected. ¡°What benefits do I need from my wife? If you¡¯re talking about benefits, you can give me plenty. Isn¡¯t it a benefit to have a wife and children warm my house when it¡¯s cold?¡± Camryn was speechless. She was truly at a loss for words. ¡°Do you have your documents with you?¡± ¡°Why?¡± Camryn asked defensively. Callum said seriously, ¡°If you have your documents, and your uncle asks me to be responsible for you again, we can get a marriage license at any moment.¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, I didn¡¯t say I want to marry you. I don¡¯t like getting married out of the blue. If you want a marriage like that, you can stop the car and pick any other girl on the streets.¡± Camryn¡¯s face was tense. She was going to lose to Callum. ¡°Then we¡¯ll just take our time dating first. We¡¯ll take it one step at a time.¡± Camryn corrected him, ¡°Mr. Callum, we¡¯re not dating either.¡± Callum said, ¡°You often send me flowers. Aren¡¯t we dating? Oh, right, I haven¡¯t given you a gift before. What do you like? I¡¯ll get you anything you want.¡± Camryn wanted to jump out of the car. She did not want to discuss dating Callum with Callum. Callum looked at her andughed. ¡°Okay, let¡¯s put that aside for now. Camryn, I¡¯ve grown to like you more each day. There¡¯s nothing about you that I dislike.¡± She was the wife that his nana chose for him. Camryn was silent. It was his first time saying that he liked her. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Callum looked at her again but said nothing. He felt that he should ask Josh for advice on how to please his fianc¨¦e and make her grow. impatient to marry him Chapter 1426 Chapter 1426 Chapter 1426 When they arrived at Wiltspoon Hotel, Callum parked the car, got out, and quickly went around to reach the passenger seat. He waited for Camryn to get out of the car before standing in front of her. ¡°Mr. Calbum?¡± Camryn raised her head to face him. He was close enough that she could easily smell the familiar scent of his body. Callum suddenly took her hand. Then, he raised it high and pressed her hand against his face. ¡°Touch my A face, Camryn. Although you can¡¯t see what I look like now, you can feel it with your hands. I know you can imagine what I look like. You¡¯re a very smart girl.¡± Camryn quietly faced him. After a long time, her hand moved. Callum let go of her hand. He let her hands roam his face gently with a hint of tenderness. Her long and soft fingers felt rough as they brushed all over his features. That was because her palms were full of thick calluses. Her hands were actually very soft and beautiful. Camryn imagined Callum¡¯s appearance in her mind by feeling his face with her hands. After touching his face for a while, she noticed that Callum was getting closer. She snapped back to her senses and hurriedly retracted her hand. Callum stared deeply at her red lips. She was a beautiful girl with delicate features. Her lips were red and plump, and as he stared at close range, he wanted to kiss her and taste whether her lips were as soft as he imagined. However, it was just a thought. He did not dare act on it. She built tall walls around her heart. He had not even climbed half of it yet, so he could not be too impulsive lest she kicked him in the face and he fell back to square one. ¡°Has my uncle arrived?¡± Camryn broke the silent but the ambiguous atmosphere remained between them. ¡°I¡¯m not sure. Let¡¯s go in first.¡± Callum held out his hand to her. ¡°Shall I lead you in?¡± ¡°No, thanks.¡± ¥ß Camryn had a white cane and could walk in by herself. Callum did not force her and apanied her to walk inside slowly. ¡°Mr. York, Camryn, you¡¯re here.¡± Mr. Newman was waiting in the lobby on the first floor and immediately greeted them when he saw them enter. He nced at his stepdaughter twice before looking at Callum. ¡°Sorry to keep you waiting, Mr. Newman.¡± ¡°No, I just arrived too.¡± Mr. Newman invited Callum to follow him into the private room he had booked. Along the way, he saw how patient and considerate Callum was to Camryn. Mr. Newman felt incredibly displeased. How did his blind niece attract the attention of the Yorks¡® second young master? This girl¡­ Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. She was just like his younger brother. They both held a certain affinity. Although Mr. Newman was the older one, their parents loved his younger brother more. Everyone else fancied his younger brother too. Regardless of when, his brother was always the focus of the crowd. Histe brother was mild¨Ctempered, very intelligent, and had great respect for him. He never wanted to compete for the family fortune, but their parents still wanted to give everything to their younger son. Even the woman he loved the most became his sister¨Cinw! Mr. Newman and his wife were already in love, but both their parents turned a blind eye to it. Instead, they let his brother marry the woman he loved the most. He could not ept it! Chapter 1427 Chapter 1427 Chapter 1427 ¡°Camryn, why were you with Mr. Callum?¡± Mr. Newman asked. Camryn said faintly, ¡°I went to the hospital to visit Liberty and bumped into Mr. Callurn, who was kind enough to send me home. He received your call while we were on the way.¡± Mr. Newman was silent before asking with concern, ¡°How is Ms. Hunt?¡± ¡°Her life is no longer in danger.¡± Camryn said, ¡°I went to apologize to her on Mom¡¯s behalf.¡± ¡°Camryn, it might not be your mother who was behind it. Don¡¯t say that your mother did it until she¡¯s convicted,¡± Mr. Newman said crossly. ¡°The police wouldn¡¯t take Mom away unless they had evidence. No one involved that day managed to run away. Even if you just came back, you should have heard about it too. I believe the police wouldn¡¯t falsely use Mom.¡± In fact, Camryn did not know why the police arrested her mother. They took her away swiftly. Well, the truth woulde to light sooner orter. Her mother always thought she was powerful with her underworld forces, but she did not know. that evil would never prevail. In the end, she got caught. Of course, Camryn was not sympathetic or worried about her mother at all, let alone think of ways. to save her mother. She only felt that it was her mother¡¯s own fault. Mr. Newman choked. He had nothing to say. After a long time, he hurriedly handed the menu to Callum and let him order. ¡°I don¡¯t need the menu.¡± As one of the Yorks, he knew all about the delicious specialties of his own hotel like the back of his hand. Since it was Mr. Newman¡¯s treat, Callum did not hold back and ordered many signature dishes from the hotel. Unfortunately, he could not order wine. If he could, he would order a few bottles of good wine and blow a hole into Mr. Newman¡¯s wallet. After ordering the dishes, Callum said, ¡°You can go straight to the point, Mr. Newman. I don¡¯t like to beat around the bush, let alone y guessing games.¡± ¡°You¡¯re a very straightforward man, Mr. Callum. I like that about you.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Mr. Newman smiled and said, ¡°In that case, I¡¯ll go straight to the point. Mr. Callum, you saved Camryn before and saw her exposed body. I¡¯ve also asked you to take responsibility for her.¡± ¡°Uncle, my body wasn¡¯t exposed!¡± Camryn immediately corrected her uncle¡¯s statement. Even if he wanted to give her to Callum, he could not use such an excuse. He was humiliating her in front of Callum. Callum and Mr. Newman looked at her. There was a smile in Callum¡¯s eyes as he said meaningfully, ¡°The dress you wore that night was very beautiful.¡± Camryn, who had always had a calm expression, blushed at his words. Then, Callum said to Mr. Newman, ¡°I saved your niece out of the kindness of my heart, but your reliance on me is chilling my heart. For instance, I helped an old man cross the road, but then people started telling me to take care of that man for the rest of his life¨Cit¡¯s putting me off from wanting to be a good person. ¡°If I see something like that happen in the future, should I save the girl or not? If I save a few more girls and their parents ask me to bear the responsibility of them, won¡¯t I end up having to marry multiple wives? Polygamy isn¡¯t allowed in our country.¡± Chapter 1428 Chapter 1428 Chapter 1428 Mr. Newman looked at his niece and said, ¡°Mr. Callum, my niece is different from others. She can¡¯t see. If you don¡¯t take responsibility for seeing her exposed, she¡¯ll never be able to get married.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Uncle!¡± Camryn said solemnly, ¡°I won¡¯t marry, and I don¡¯t need Mr. Callum to be responsible for me. I didn¡¯t suffer any losses. I wasn¡¯t taken advantage of by that man that night, so there¡¯s no need for Mr. Callum to take responsibility.¡± Mr. Newman was not her real father, but he was her elder. He was also her stepfather. Mr. Newman making such a request to Callum made Camryn feel so humiliated that she wanted to bury herself in the ground. ¡°Camryn, I promised your dad that I would raise you into an adult and find a good husband for you. I didn¡¯t take care of you and caused you to lose your sight. I¡¯m already feeling guilty about it. If I don¡¯t help you find a suitable husband, I won¡¯t have the face to see your father when I die.¡± Mr. Newman was actually doing this to ruin Camryn¡¯s image in Callum¡¯s eyes. He wanted Callum and the York family to look down on Camryn, If he knew that Old Mrs. York had decided to make his niece her second granddaughter¨Cinw, he would probably have spit blood. ¡°Mr. Callum, look¡­¡± Callum looked at Camryn and said, ¡°You mean to say that if I don¡¯t marry Ms. Camryn, she¡¯d be single for the rest of her life. How can I bear to let that happen to her? Ms. Newman¡­¡± ¡°Mr. Callum!¡± Camryn interrupted Callum¡¯s words with a tense face. ¡°Mr. Callum, I don¡¯t need you to be responsible for me.¡± She turned to Mr. Newman and said again. seriously, ¡°Uncle, stop forcing Mr. Callum to marry me. I don¡¯t need it! Marrying me off isn¡¯t even your real goal. Why don¡¯t you just tell Mr. Callum what you want? Why are you using me as a bargaining chip? ¡°Mr. Callum, what my uncle really wants is for you to step in and help mediate so that your w¡¯s sister canpromise and help my mother get a lighter sentence.¡± sister¨Cin Mr. Newman¡¯s expression darkened. Fine, it was good that Camryn spelled out his true thoughts. That was indeed his real intention. Callum deliberately let out a hum. ¡°It¡¯s not because he genuinely wants me to marry you? Mr. Newman, to be honest, I¡¯m willing to do so. She¡¯s beautiful and pleasing to the eye, so it doesn¡¯t matter to me that she can¡¯t see. Her blindness just makes it more convenient for me to bully her and pick on her.¡± Camryn¡¯s expression was calm. Mr. Newman looked thoughtful. ¡°Mr. Callum, my wife is Camryn¡¯s mother. If you marry Camryn, my wife will be your mother¨Cinw. Are you willing to stand by idly as your mother¨Cinw goes to jail?¡± Since Camryn had pointed out his real intention, he shamelessly said what was in his heart. ¡°Liberty is your sister¨Cinw¡¯s sister, so you should plead for your mother¨Cinw. We¡¯ll all be rtives in the future and will cross paths regrly. Can you forgive your mother¨Cinw this one time? I guarantee that she won¡¯t do anything to Liberty and Serenity again after shees out.¡± Callum picked up the teacup, took an elegant sip of tea before cing the cup back down and said with a smile, ¡°Mr. Newman, don¡¯t be so quick to call yourselves my inws. Your niece said I don¡¯t have to marry her, so our families are not rted yet. ¡°If you have difficulties in your business, I may be able to help for the sake of your niece. However, I won¡¯t help you in this case. It doesn¡¯t matter whether your wife is my mother¨Cinw. Even if she was, shemitted a crime and should be punished. I won¡¯t intercede for her. ¡°You should give up on that, Mr. Newman. Liberty and her sister won¡¯t agree to a settlement!¡± Callum stood up when he was done speaking and pulled Camryn up as well. He said to Mr. Newman, ¡°I won¡¯t continue eating this meal. You cane to me if it¡¯s about taking responsibility for Ms. Newman, but don¡¯te looking for anything else. I can¡¯t help you.¡± He pulled Camryn out of the room. Mr. Newman was left there sitting alone, his expression turned dark and his face paled. Chapter 1429 Chapter 1429 Chapter 1429 After exiting the room, Callum took Camryn to another room, ordered food again, and told her to continue to treat him to lunch. He said righteously, ¡°Your uncle tried to force me to marry you. I suffered grievances, so you should buy me lunch.¡± Camryn felt amused and exasperated. ¡°I didn¡¯t say I wouldn¡¯t. You don¡¯t have to make excuses.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll send you home after lunch. Pack up and move out of that house. I¡¯m worried your uncle will do something to you.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Where am I supposed to move to?¡± ¡°My ce, of course. I have a house near your ce. Move into my house and I¡¯ll ask someone to take care of you. Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t live in the same house, lest others say that we¡¯re cohabiting before getting married.¡± Camryn paused. ¡°Mr. Callum, stop talking about marriage. I won¡¯t follow my uncle¡¯s arrangement. I¡¯ll ask my assistant to help me tidy up the small room inside my storeter. I can stay there for now. It¡¯s much more convenient that way too.¡± She would move back home when her uncle also got arrested. In the meantime, it was indeed safer for her to move out. Who knew if her uncle would kill her out of desperation? Back then, her uncle and mother wanted to kill her, but she saved herself at the cost of her eyes. ¡°Sounds good.¡± Callum did not force her to move into his vi. The sun set and darkness came, depicting another daying to an end. Zachary and Serenity took Sonny to the hospital. They did not know if it was because of the psychic or because Sonny saw his mother wake up, but he slept well in the afternoon. His mental state was back to normal now. However, Serenity was not well. She had a headache after sleeping badly for two days. Before going out to the hospital, she took a painkiller behind Zachary¡¯s back. She had always taken this painkiller, but the side effects were quite strong. Unless she was in severe pain, She would not have taken it. Zachary snipped arge number of flowers from her garden and wrapped them into a bouquet, then let Sonny carry it into the ward, ¡°Mom,¡± Sonny called out while trotting to the hospital bed. He handed the bouquet to Liberty as if he was offering up treasure. His ck eyes twinkled as he 4 said childishly, ¡°Mom, you¡¯ll get better soon If you get flowers.¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°As long as you¡¯re by Mom¡¯s side, Mom will get better soon.¡± ¡°Sonny, just put the bouquet next to your mom¡¯s pillow.¡± Serenity walked over and helped her nephew ce the bouquet next to her sister¡¯s pillow. She said with a smile, ¡°Liberty, Zachary only helped to cut and wrap the flowers. Sonny was the one who picked the flowers.¡± Liberty¡¯s smile grew sweeter. ¡°Aunt Audrey and Elisa, leave my sister to us. You two go home and rest for now. Aunt Audrey, worry too much. My sister will get better soon.¡± Serenity and Zachary took over Audrey and Eliza to keep watch over Liberty for the night. Audrey watched over Liberty for half a day. She was slightly relieved when she saw that Liberty¡¯s mental state was better than in the morning. As long as she was still alive, her injuries would heal! There was only a rainbow after the rain. ¡°All right, we¡¯ll take our leave. I¡¯lle by tomorrow morning with some food for Liberty. The doctor said she can start eating liquid food tomorrow.¡± Audrey touched Liberty¡¯s still pale face tenderly and said, ¡°Liberty, you have to get better soon. I¡¯ll make some good tonic for you in the future. Seeing you like this breaks my heart.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll get better, Aunt Audrey. I already feel much better now than when I first woke up in the morning.¡± Her wound just hurt. Liberty endured it and concealed it for fear that the people who were worried about her would feel even more distressed. Elisa rubbed the top of Sonny¡¯s head. ¡°Say bye¨Cbye, Sonny.¡± Chapter 1430 Chapter 1430 Chapter 1430 ¡°Bye¨Cbye.¡± Sonny waved to Elisa and blew her a kiss, making everyoneugh. Zachary personally escorted Audrey and Elisa out of the inpatient building. ¡°You¡¯ve worked hard these days, Zachary.¡± Audrey said gratefully, ¡°It¡¯s thanks to you that Seren and her sister could turn their fortunes around. You helped them a lot. Thank you.¡± Zachary said warmly, ¡°Seren is my wife, and her sister is my sister. They¡¯re my family. It¡¯s only natural that I help them.¡± He helped Serenity and Liberty tremendously, but it was also because they got acquainted with him that they ended up being involved in trouble. ¡°You¡¯re a responsible man. I feel relieved leaving Serenity in your hands.¡± Audrey had always known that Zachary was one of the most outstanding young men in Wiltspoon. Her daughter had a good eye. However, they were not destined to be together. Instead, Zachary became her nephew¨Cinw. At least he did not fall into the hands of someone else. Audrey and Elisa left. Zachary walked them to their car before going back. ¡°Zachary.¡± A familiar voice called out. Zachary turned his head and saw Duncan with a fruit basket in one hand and a bouquet of flowers. in the other, walking toward him. ¡°Duncan, Liberty¡¯s ward is already full of fruit baskets and bouquets.¡± ¡°Those are from other people.¡± Duncan felt that he had to quietly fight for a ce in Liberty¡¯s ward. ¡°Why did youe again when it¡¯s already nighttime? Are you going topete with us for the night watch again? She won¡¯t be able to rest if you stay to watch over her at night. It¡¯ll affect her recuperation.¡± Duncan could keep vigilst night because Liberty was still in aa. However, now that she was awake, Zachary was not in favor of his friend keeping guard again. His sister¨Cinw still did not know that Duncan had feelings for her. Duncan said, ¡°I just came over to have a look. I feel uneasy if I don¡¯t see her.¡± ¡°And your mom allowed you toe here?¡± Mrs. Lewis had looked down on Liberty for a long time. Duncan walked side by side with Zachary and made thetter help carry the fruit basket. ¡°My mom can¡¯t interfere with my affairs. She¡¯s looking forward to my marriage, but she¡¯s trying her best to stop me from getting together with the woman I like. I don¡¯t know if she wants me to get married or remain a bachelor for the rest of my life. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with me liking Liberty? She¡¯s single, I¡¯m single. We¡¯re both free and have the right to love freely.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Duncan did not care how unpleasant his mother¡¯s expression was when he left the house. He could do whatever he wanted. He was already in his thirties. He was not a mama¡¯s boy. Why would he need to follow his mother¡¯s arrangements? ¡°My sister¨Cinw doesn¡¯t think of you in that way!¡± Zachary reminded his friend. It was too early to talk about marriage now. Liberty¡¯s rtionship with Duncan was absolutely pure. To her, he was just a frequent customer of her store. If one had to insist that there was a rtionship between them, it would be a rtionship between andlord and tenant. Duncan paused before saying, ¡°Zachary, can you help me? Put in a few good words for me in front of Liberty. I think it¡¯s quite good if we went from best friends to being brothers¨Cinw.¡± Chapter 1431 Chapter 1431 Chapter 1431 ¡°I won¡¯t help you. You can go after Liberty by yourself. If you manage to pursue her, Seren and I will support the two of you together. If you don¡¯t, then stop pestering her. After all, your mother doesn¡¯t approve of her.¡± 1 Zachary did not stop Duncan, but he would not help him either. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. ¡°We¡¯re good friends, Duncan. I know you¡¯re a man worthy of lifelongmitment, but your mom. looks down on Liberty and doesn¡¯t approve of you two together. Liberty already experienced one failed marriage. I don¡¯t want her to be bullied by her inws again after remarrying.¡± Duncan hurriedly said, ¡°Zachary, don¡¯t you understand my temperament by now? When has my mom ever made my decisions for me? I¡¯m in charge of my own life. I know my mom is biased against Liberty, but that¡¯s because she doesn¡¯t know Liberty well. She¡¯ll ept Liberty after she gets to know her. ¡°Even if she doesn¡¯t ept Liberty, it won¡¯t affect us. I don¡¯t live with my parents. I won¡¯t let her suffer from my parents¡® anger.¡± Zachary nced at Duncan and said, ¡°You¡¯re still naive, Duncan. When ites down to it, you¡¯ll realize that some problems are unavoidable. You¡¯ll have to face them either way. ¡°If Liberty gets with you, won¡¯t you still see your parents in the future? They¡¯re your parents, after all. I suggest you wait a little longer. Maybe your mother will agree when Liberty¡¯s career takes off. ¡°Besides, Liberty has no ns on remarrying now. She¡¯spletely focused on her business and has no illicit thoughts about you. If you confess to her now, she¡¯ll reject you without hesitation. She doesn¡¯t have the confidence to stand by your side now. ¡°Give her some time to change. She¡¯s right under your nose now, so you don¡¯t have to worry about her being snatched away by other men.¡± Without a second thought, Zachary knew that Duncan would fail if he tried to pursue Liberty now. Duncan was silent for a long time before saying, ¡°I¡¯ll think about it, Zachary. Of course I won¡¯t confess to Liberty now. I¡¯ll wait and see when she recovers. I¡¯m willing to wait. I¡¯ve been single for thirty¨Csix years. What¡¯s a few more?¡± The older he got, the more anxious his mother would be, which greatly increases his chances of being with Liberty. The two men chatted as they walked and soon arrived at Liberty¡¯s ward. Serenity raised her brows when she saw Duncan again, but she said nothing. ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny greeted Duncan sweetly when he saw the mane in. Duncan responded with a smile, ced the items down, and asked Liberty with concern, ¡°How are you feeling, Liberty? Does your wound hurt?¡± ¡°Thank you for your concern, Mr. Lewis. I¡¯ll live. The wound hurts, but it¡¯s tolerable.¡± Liberty did not notice Duncan when she just woke up. She did not know that he watched over her all night. Serenity did not tell her sister either. She nned to talk to Liberty about Duncan after she was discharged from the hospital. ¡°Okay.¡± Duncan looked at Liberty deeply for a moment and said, ¡°You¡¯re still looking very pale. Did the doctor say whether you could eat?¡± Serenity answered, ¡°She can only eat liquid food starting tomorrow.¡± Duncan nodded again. For a moment, he did not know what to say. In the end, he could only say a fewmon pleasantries like other visitors did before bidding goodbye. He could not stay and watch over Liberty tonight. It would arouse her suspicion if he stayed too long. In Liberty¡¯s eyes, Duncan¡¯s care for her was because she was Zachary¡¯s sister¨Cinw. 1 Thus, she was not surprised when he visited her. However, she would find it odd if he was overly concerned about her. Zachary saw Duncan out of the ward while Serenity sat on the edge of the bed with Sonny, talking about stuff that would make her sister happy. Chapter 1432 Chapter1432 Chapter 1432 Liberty was still weak and soon fell asleep again. Even Sonny fell asleep in Serenity¡¯s arms. Serenity ced her nephew on the sofa bed and covered him with a thin nket. When she saw that her sister¡¯s IV fluid was almost finished, she rang the bell to notify the nurse toe and change the IV. After changing the IV drip, Serenity watched for a few more minutes before turning around and quietly walked outside. Zachary pushed the door and entered. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. He saw Serenity sitting on the sofa in the small lounge, looking dazed. He walked over, sat next to her, and touched her shoulder, asking softly, ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Is Liberty asleep?¡± ¡°Liberty and Sonny are both asleep.¡± Serenity leaned on her husband¡¯s shoulder. ¡°Babe.¡± ¡°Hm?¡± Serenity just called out to him and did not say anything else. ¡°Did you want to say something to me?¡± Zachary asked warmly. Serenity wrapped her arms around him and said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I just wanted to call you.¡± Zachary said indulgently. ¡°If you wanted to call me, then call me more. I won¡¯t find it annoying or noisy.¡± ¡°I know about the trending search.¡± Zachary paused. ¡°Seren, those paparazzi only spout nonsense. You don¡¯t have to take it to heart.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t see what the paparazzi said. I only saw that York Corporation issued a rification statement from you.¡± The first trending search was taken down, and Serenity did not bother looking it up. However, she could guess what it was after seeing the rification statement Zachary issued. ¡°Babe, thank you for defending me like that. I don¡¯t care if other people believe in me or not, but at least you defended me.¡± He took all the me upon himself. ¡°You¡¯re my wife. We¡¯ll be spending the rest of our lives together. Who will I defend if not you? Besides, I was telling the truth. I don¡¯t want to have children so soon. We can have a child after our wedding and after spending enough time with each other. ¡°Seren, you really don¡¯t need to pressure yourself. As my parents said, let nature take its course. They won¡¯t rush you to have a child. My mom said that they won¡¯t rush us for the next ten years.¡± Serenity left his shoulder and looked up at him. ¡°I¡¯ll be thirty¨Csix in ten years. I¡¯ll be at an advanced maternal age by then.¡® Before Zachary could speak, she continued, ¡°I¡¯ve also gotten over it. I don¡¯t want to pressure myself anymore. If I still can¡¯t get pregnant after two or three years, let¡¯s do a test to see what the cause is.¡® Zachary took her into his arms once again and said, ¡°Okay. If we still don¡¯t have a child after three years, we¡¯ll go for a checkup together. Don¡¯t think about children for now. By the way, Seren, you don¡¯t know how many people called to ask about me. ¡°All of them said they would introduce me to a good doctor and help me cure my infertility. The first person who called was that cousin of yours. He¡¯s the one I¡¯m least able to deal with. He only had a child with his wife a few years after his marriage. I used tough at him and said that I would introduce him to a doctor. ¡°As soon as the trending search came up, Clive couldn¡¯t wait to shove back everything I said to him down my throat.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Serves you right. Who told you tough at him before? Clive and Alice have a good rtionship and weren¡¯t in a rush to have a child, but you insinuated that they were having a problem. Clive has shown you plenty of respect by not beating you up.¡± Chapter 1433 Chapter 1433 Chapter 1433 Zachary deliberately pulled a long face. ¡°It¡¯s karma. I got so many calls that my phone ran out of battery. Even Remy said that he would introduce me to a miracle doctor to cure me.¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity could not help butugh when she imagined the scene of Zachary being cared for by everyone. Afterughing, she said to him, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you ept when Remy wanted to introduce a miracle healer to you? Ask that genius doctor if it¡¯s possible for him to cure Camryn¡¯s eyes.¡± ¡°I forgot about that.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°At that time, I was so angry by their concern that I was going crazy. Ipletely forgot about Callum. However, I did talk to Callum about this before. Ms. Newman¡¯s aunt went to Annenburg to find the doctor, but she could not find him. ¡°Remy¡¯s fourth brother is the one and only disciple of the genius doctor. There¡¯s a 99% chance of him getting married. Once Dr. Carden bes the fourth missus of the Johnson family, it¡¯ll be much easier for Callum to ask the doctor for help.¡± ¡°99% chance?¡± Zachary hummed in affirmation. ¡°Dr. Carden saved Tim and got pregnant, but she doesn¡¯t really want to marry him. The men of the Johnson family are the same as the Yorks. They¡¯re all single- mindedly devoted. When Tim heard that Dr. Carden was pregnant, he followed her back. ¡°Remy said that Tim would most likely marry her, and Dr. Carden would follow him back to the Johnson family after giving birth. However, her tummy¡¯s so big now and it isn¡¯t convenient for her to offer consultations. Ms. Newman will have to wait for a few months until Dr. Carden gives birth and recuperates before she can have her eyes treated.¡± Serenity listened with great interest, feeling that there were many stories about the Johnson family. The couple agreed to go to Annenburg to visit the Johnsons, but it was impossible for Serenity to leave Wiltspoon now that Liberty was injured. The trip was postponed for the time being. ¡°Seren, are you sleepy? Go and rest with Sonny first, I¡¯ll wake you up when I¡¯m tired.¡± ¡°Sonny is sleeping peacefully now. That psychic is quite amazing.¡± Zachary said, ¡°Nana trusts him, so of course he¡¯s amazing. He foretold our fate and said that we¡¯re destined to have a son and a daughter, so you don¡¯t have to worry about it. We¡¯re destined to have children. They¡¯lle sooner orter.¡± Serenity nodded. She was relieved after hearing that she was fated to have a son and daughter. She was able to have children¨Cit simply was not time yet. ¡°I saw you sneak off to ask the psychic something. What did you ask him? Or was the statement about us having a son and a daughter just a pre¨Carranged script with him to make me happy?¡± Serenity thought of that. Zachary quickly said, ¡°Seren, I¡¯ve never met that psychic prior to today. I don¡¯t believe in such things anyway. It¡¯s Nana who believes in it. How could I have arranged everything in advance? ¡°The question I secretly asked him was when we would have our child. It¡¯s not because I was anxious, but because I was worried that you¡¯ll overthink again.¡± Serenity hurriedly asked, ¡°What did he say?¡± ¡°He said our efforts will bear fruit fromte summer to early fall.¡± Serenity asked, ¡°September? October?¡± They still had to wait a few months. Zachary embraced her and said gently, ¡°We¡¯ll get the good news this year anyway, honey. You really should stop putting pressure on yourself and just live a good life every day. When Liberty discharged from the hospital, I¡¯ll ask someone toe over and tailor your wedding dress. Hopefully, the baby will onlye after the wedding. I don¡¯t want you to be tired.¡± Chapter 1434 Chapter 1434 Chapter 1434 Zachary was worried about Serenity after seeing how hard Alice had it during her pregnancy. ¡°I already decided not to pressure myself. I want to go back to being the old Serenity Hunt. I¡¯ll live my own life without caring about what others say. In the end, she still felt that Zachary¡¯s status put a lot of pressure on her. The gap between them was toorge. She hoped that her investment project could make her money. Even if she could not match Zachary, at least there was an advancement on her part. ¡°I¡¯ll go rest for a while.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary apanied her into the ward and watched her lie down beside Sonny. He looked at Liberty¡¯s IV drip and estimated that it wouldst another half an hour before the next one. Then, he returned to the small lounge, sat down on the sofa again, and organized his work affairs while it was still early. As Liberty healed in the hospital, Serenity remained by her side almost every day. Zachary went back to the office during the day and woulde over at night to be on vigil with his wife. However, that was exhausting. Serenity¡¯s heart ached for her husband. She tried to persuade him to rest at home, but he refused. When Liberty was able to walk, Zachary arranged for Mrs. Lane and another maid toe over and take care of Liberty in Serenity¡¯s stead. Sonny returned to school after taking a few days off. Jim continued to fetch him to William¡¯s gym N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. for lessons. While Liberty got better day by day, shocking news emerged from the upper ss of Wiltspoon. The eldest daughter of the Newman family sued her mother and father, using them of murdering the late Mr. Newman, Camryn¡¯s father, more than twenty years ago. She stated their motives of wanting to possess the family assets and to be together officially. Camryn asked for Callum¡¯s help to get Josh to conduct an investigation. In addition to handing. over the recorder to the police, they found evidence of Mr. and Mrs. Newman were together secretly when they were young and submitted the evidence to the police. The Bucham family already had dirt on the Newman husband and wife. Although most of the evidence pointed to Mrs. Newman, Mr. Newman was also involved. In his anxiousness to help his wife get a lighter sentence, Mr. Newman ended up subjected to the investigation as well. Even if he rified that he did not murder his brother, he admitted that his wife and him fell in love long ago. After his brother¡¯s death, he could not bear to see the woman he loved, who was also his sister¨Cinw, struggling to get by with his two¨Cyear¨Cold niece, so he took his sister¨Cinw as his wife while disregarding what everyone said. He angrily rebuked Camryn for being ungrateful and throwing stones at them while they were down. Even both of Camryn¡¯s aunts returned home to me Camryn. They almost wrecked Spring Blossoms, but fortunately, Callum happened to be present. The two aunts did not dare make a move against Camryn. The only one who supported Camryn was her youngest aunt. Callum helped to clean up the mess in the Newman family. Serenity and Zachary did not interfere much. After Camryn sued her mother and stepfather for murdering her father, Josh and Jasmine¡¯s engagement day arrived. Although Liberty was still injured and was hospitalized for a week, she was recovering well. She could not personally send her blessings to Jasmine, so she insisted on her sister attending Josh and Jasmine¡¯s engagement party ording to n. In the ward, Serenity peeled an apple or her sister, saying, ¡°Don¡¯t rush me, Liberty. I¡¯ll go to the Bucham residence tonight with Zachary to attend Jasmine and Mr. Bucham¡¯s engagement party.¡± Liberty was relieved. ¡°That¡¯s good. I would¡¯ve chased you out if you didn¡¯t go. I can take care of myself now, and Mrs. Lane and the others are here to look after me too. You don¡¯t have to worry about anything.¡± Chapter 1435 Chapter 1435 Chapter 1435 Liberty sat on the bed. She no longer needed to be hooked on IV drips all day, with only two bags. every morning. When the IV therapy finished around noon, she was free to walk around. However, her injured hand had not regained her usual strength. She could not even hold her son. She was a little worried that it would affect her business in the future. The doctor said that she would recover fully as long as she recuperated well, so she was relieved. ¡°Jasmine and I have been friends for many years. Of course, I¡¯ll attend her engagement party.¡± Serenity peeled the apple and sliced it into four. She handed one to her sister, one to Sonny, and the remaining two to Mrs. Lane and the other maid. ¡°You go ahead, Missus.¡± Mrs. Lane declined the apple. Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Take it, Mrs. Lane. I don¡¯t really like apples.¡± Liberty chimed in, ¡°It¡¯s true, Mrs. Lane. Seren doesn¡¯t like to eat apples. If you don¡¯t eat them, they¡¯ll just end up getting tossed out.¡± At the sisters¡® words, Mrs. Lane and the maid took the apple slices that Serenity handed to them. ¡°What do you want to eat for lunch, Liberty?¡± Serenity put down the fruit knife and asked, ¡°Tell me what you want to eat. I¡¯ll go back and cook. for you.¡± ¡°You and Zachary took full charge of my three meals. Zachary got a nutritionist to put together al menu for me that¡¯ll help with my recovery. You and Zachary worked together to make that happen.¡± Some of the recipes the nutritionist nned for were not dishes that Liberty enjoyed. Serenity had to coax her sister repeatedly to finish eating them. Serenity giggled and said, ¡°If you have something else you want to eat, I can still make it for you.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need to go through the trouble. I can survive with the meals that Sam brings over every day. You guys feed me so much I¡¯ll probably put on twenty pounds by the time I leave the hospital.¡± It was not easy for her to lose weight, but she was fattened up by her sister again after staying in the hospital. It was not only her sister and brother¨Cinw, but her aunt too had always sent her nutritious soup every time she came to visit. Aunt Audrey said that she needed more iron since she had lost a lot of blood, so she brought over soup rich in iron every day for Liberty to consume. The Yorks also sent over soups at regr intervals. Liberty felt like she was living the life of a farm pig in the hospital. Everyone was raising her like a farm animal. ¡°That¡¯s not true. In fact, I think that you¡¯ve lost weight. Your face is a lot sharper.¡± Serenity reached out to touch her sister¡¯s face. ¡°Liberty, your skin feels much better too.¡± ¡°How could it not be when I¡¯m using the luxury skincare products given by you and Elisa? If my skin showed no improvement, you can go smash up the stores.¡± Before Liberty divorced Hank, her skincare products were also given to her by her sister. Back then, she was devoted to her family and was always busy cleaning up the house, buying and cooking food, and taking care of her baby. She never took good care of herself, which led to Hank disliking her. Serenity told her sister off for neglecting her beauty after marriage, but Liberty said there was no need to dress up anymore since she was married. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Now, Liberty understood that a woman had to love herself well. Knock, knock. There was a knock at the door. Mrs. Lane quickly went to open the door. It was Duncan. He held another basket of fruit and a bouquet, followed by Lily. Lily visited Liberty twice when she apanied Mrs. Lewis. It was her first timeing here with Duncan. ¡°Mr. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lane stepped aside and let Duncan and Lily enter. ¡°Missus, it¡¯s Mr. Lewis and Ms. Harmon.¡± Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes shed as she nced at her sister. When she saw that there was no suspicion on Liberty¡¯s face, sheposed herself and greeted Duncan and Lily with her usual smile. Chapter 1436 Chapter 1436 Chapter 1436 After Zachary talked to Duncan, Duncan did not dare visit Liberty on a daily basis. He only visited her twice that week. The first time was the night he had a heart¨Cto¨Cheart talk with Zachary The second time was that day itself. ¡°Mr. Lewis, Ms. Harmon.¡± Liberty got up in a hurry when she saw them enter. Duncan put the fruit basket down and handed the bouquet to Liberty. He gazed at her gently and said, ¡°These flowers are for you, Liberty.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis. You¡¯re too kind.¡± Liberty epted the flowers and thanked Duncan, She had been receiving many fruit baskets and bouquets every day. She was a person of minor importance, but she was still the biological sister of Mrs. York and Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece. Therefore, she received many visitors every day. Duncan smiled. His gaze lingered on Liberty for a long time before saying worriedly, ¡°Did the doctor say when you can be discharged?¡± ¡°I can only leave the hospital after another week.¡± Duncan nodded. Lily also asked Liberty several questions out of concern. Knock knock. Sounds of someone knocking on the door rang again. A bodyguard entered and said to Serenity, ¡°Missus, the Browns are here again.¡± After Liberty regained consciousness, the Browns still came to the hospital every single day. despite knowing they were not wee. Serenity nced at her sister and said, ¡°Ask them to leave.¡± She knew Jessica was used because Mrs. Newman held the fate of the Yates family. Mrs. Newman forced Jessica to be her pawn to kidnap Sonny. After Jessica was taken away by the police, neither the Browns nor the Yateses could meet her. Only thewyer could. Family members could only visit Jessica after she was sentenced. Jessica apologized to Liberty through herwyer and defended herself. She said that even though. she was jealous of Liberty, she had never thought of hurting Sonny. She only helped Mrs. Newman because she had no other choice. However, no matter the reason behind her actions, it was a fact that she hadmitted a crime. What awaited her was punishment by thew. Her wedding ceremony with Hank was canceled in the end. The Browns forced Hank to divorce Jessica. After finding out about it, Jessicaughed in self¨Cdeprecation. She had always thought she was a winner, but she did not know she was the biggest loser all along. If she did not date Hank back then, she would have found a nice guy, married him, and lived a peaceful life. Jessica wound herself up in that situation when she chose to be a homewrecker instead of someone¡¯s lawful wife. Being in heaven or hell depended on one¡¯s way of thinking. Jessica regretted her decision. ¡°Okay.¡± The bodyguard went out. Mrs. Brown was about to enter after seeing the bodyguard exiting, but the guards blocked her. ¡°Mrs. Brown, our missus requests you to leave. Ms Hunt doesn¡¯t wish to see you. all.¡± ¡°We just want to go in and have a look. We¡¯re not going to do anything. Why won¡¯t you let us in? Who¡¯s inside?¡± Mrs. Brown asked. She could hear other people talking in the room. The York family¡¯s bodyguard replied, ¡°It¡¯s Mr. Lewis.¡± Upon hearing Duncan hade again, Mrs. Brown immediately decided to enter the room.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. However, the York family¡¯s bodyguards stood in front of the door like a wall, keeping Mrs. Brown and her family outside the room. They could not even take a step inside. ¡°Mom, let¡¯s go.¡± Hank felt unpleasant when he heard Duncan was visiting Liberty again. Chapter 1437 Chapter 1437 Chapter 1437 Hank could not even enter the room even though he hade. However,ughter could be hearding from the room when Duncan was inside. The stark contrast made Hank disappointed. ¡°Hank,¡± Mrs. Brown said in dissatisfaction. ¡°Mr. Lewis is in Liberty¡¯s room, Hank!¡± Chelsea red at her brother and reminded him. ¡°That¡¯s their freedom. What does it have to do with us? Let¡¯s go.¡± After speaking, Hank left his parents and sister and walked away. He did not even pass the flowers he bought to the bodyguard to be brought inside. Instead, he threw the bouquet away in a nearby trash can. ¡°Hank, Hank.¡± Mrs. Brown went after him. She nced at the flowers when she passed by. Ah, the flowers were worth hundreds of dors. It was wasted just like that by her wasteful son. Mr. Brown sighed and left as well. Only Chelsea remained at the ward¡¯s door. She said to the York family¡¯s bodyguards, ¡°I won¡¯t disturb Liberty as she has to entertain her guests. I¡¯ll visit her after the guests leave. I¡¯ll wait here.¡± As she spoke, she found a seat nearby and sat down. The bodyguards let her do as she wished so long as she did not barge into the room. They were too lazy to care about her. She used to bully their missus¡¯s sister so badly. Why was she pretending to be a kind person now? Half an hourter, Duncan and Lily exited the room. Chelsea, who had waited for half an hour, stood up. However, she sat down again when she saw Duncan was with Lily. She even lowered her head and looked at her phone, acting like she did not see Duncan. Lily did not notice Chelsea¡¯s actions. She asked Duncan, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you stay longer, Duncan?¡± Duncan turned to look toward Lily. She smiled and said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to look at me like that, Duncan. I¡¯m being honest. I don¡¯t mean any sarcasm.¡± ¡°Ms. Harmon, let¡¯s find a ce to have coffee and talk.¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Lily agreed right away. Ten minutester, they entered a cafe. Duncan ordered an Americano. Lily ordered atte. datte. ¡°Ms. Harmon, I¡¯m a straightforward person, and I don¡¯t like to beat around the bush. I apologize if the words I¡¯m about to say hurt your pride.¡± Lily faced him calmly. She said with a smile, ¡°You can say whatever you want, Duncan. I¡¯m not a flower in a greenhouse that can¡¯t stand the battering of the wind and rain.¡± ¡°You¡¯re a nicedy, Ms. Harmon. My mom likes you a lot and is trying hard to bring us together. However, I don¡¯t have romantic feelings for you. My mom must¡¯ve told you about my thoughts too. I hope you don¡¯t waste any more effort on me. Nothing wille out of it.¡± Duncan had told his mother not to hold on to Lily anymore. He would never date her Chapter 1438 Chapter 1438 Chapter 1438 Lily held her cup and took a sip of coffee elegantly. After that, she smiled at Duncan and said, ¡± You¡¯re such an honest person. Your words do hurt my pride. ¡°Can you tell me why you fell in love with Liberty? She¡¯s divorced and has a three¨Cyear¨Cold son. She isn¡¯t even on equal social status as you. I just wish to know how I lost so I can ovee my shorings¡­¡± ¡°To be honest, I have no idea either. I didn¡¯t even know I had romantic feelings for Liberty. I only realized I had unconsciously developed those feelings after the panic, fear, and heartache I felt after she got hurt. ¡°I don¡¯t care that she¡¯s divorced. I don¡¯t mind that she has a son too. I like Sonny. As for social status¡­ I don¡¯t care about it. However, I won¡¯t confess for now to not make her feel pressured. I¡¯m willing to wait for her for two to three years and confess to her after her career takes off.¡± Duncan thought he would have higher chances of seeding if he confessed to Liberty after her business flourished. It was because Liberty would have be a confident and strong woman by that time. Lily gazed at Duncan with shock and regret. She thought she could still try and strive for a chance. However, upon hearing Duncan¡¯s words, she thought of giving up trying. The thoughts he had were entirely out of consideration for Liberty. When a man considered so much for a woman, it could only mean that he had deeply fallen in love. with her. Duncan was thirty¨Csix. Many at his age already had a child or two, so he could be considered a ¡± leftover man¡°. Nevertheless, he was willing to wait for Liberty for a few years not to marry her but to confess to her. It was uncertain whether Liberty would ept him if he confessed after she became sessful. Even if he could win her over in the end, it would probably take some time, which could range from half a year to one year at least, or three to five years at most. Duncan was willing to wait anyway. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Ms. Harmon.¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Duncan said apologetically, ¡°Your time was wasted because of my mother¡¯s fondness for you.¡± Lily drank her coffee again. After some time, she said, ¡°You didn¡¯t waste my time, Duncan. I traveled to Wiltspoon on a business trip. I¡¯m here to survey the market and work with mega- corporations in Willspoon. ¡°I came here for business, but I stayed in your house because of the friendship between Mrs. Lewis and my mom. I¡¯m reuniting with Mrs. Lewis in my mom¡¯s stead. I lived in your house. because of our parents¡® rtionship, not because of you. You didn¡¯t waste my time. I¡¯ll return after sessfully negotiating a deal with the business tycoons of Wiltspoon. ¡°You don¡¯t have to feel sorry for me. You didn¡¯t do me any wrong.¡± After a moment of silence, Duncan said, ¡°No wonder my mom likes you so much, Ms. Harmon. You¡¯re truly a consideratedy.¡± Lily smiled confidently and said, ¡°I think I¡¯m outstanding too. I admit that I wanted to develop our rtionship to being a couple and even husband and wife. I admire you, but you already have someone you like. Let¡¯s just be business partners in the future. ¡°I¡¯ve lost, and I ept it. You¡¯ve spent a lot of time with Liberty since long ago. I was the one who came afterward. Timing was just not on my side. I think you would¡¯ve fallen in love with me if I hade here before you met Liberty.¡± Lily epted that she could not gain Duncan¡¯s fancy, but she also felt regretful. There were few men whom she would admire and be willing to marry. She was satisfied with Duncan, but sadly, her feelings were not reciprocated. They were not fated to be. Both of them did not like to force things. Duncan did not reply. There were no ifs. There was no ¡°if only I had known earlier.¡± His feelings for Liberty were unexpected, even to himself. It was surprising. ¡°I¡¯ll still live in your house, Duncan. I¡¯ll also pretend in front of Mrs. Lewis and make her think I¡¯m still trying my best to woo you. I already told her not to meddle in our affairs.¡± If Lily backed out immediately, Mrs. Lewis would definitely do something. Chapter 1439 Chapter 1439 Chapter 1439 Duncan stared at Lily in silence. After some time, he said calmly, ¡°This is your decision, Ms. Harmon. You can do as you wish, but I won¡¯t reciprocate or ept your feelings just because of this.¡± He knew that Lily¡¯s feelings for him had not extended to one of love. Therefore, she could remain. alert and rational when facing his reply. She even epted the fact that she lost to Liberty calmly However, he still made things clear beforehand. No matter what Lily did, Duncan would never ept her. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. He did not have a big heart. It was only enough for one person. The woman who entered his heart first would be kept there forever. Duncan would feel happy if he could marry the person he loved. If he could not marry her, he would not forget her and store his feelings for her in the depths of his heart. Lily smiled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Duncan. I won¡¯t expect you to repay me or ept my feelings for this. We¡¯re all adults. We have to face the consequences of all the decisions we make. ¡°You can reject me if I invite you privately, but I hope you¡¯ll give me an opportunity for business coborations. Although Harmon Corporation hasn¡¯t set its foundation in Wiltspoon, we¡¯re still a mega- corporation back in our ce.¡± Duncan met her gaze. Her eyes were honest. After a moment of silence, he said, ¡°Regarding business coborations, I won¡¯t refuse to work with Harmon Corporation if the discussion is smooth and it¡¯s a win-win situation.¡± Lily said with a smile, ¡°I¡¯m relieved to hear this.¡± After she finished her coffee, she said to Duncan, ¡°I still have matters to attend to, so I¡¯ll be leaving first. See you tonight, Duncan.¡± They were going to the Buchams¡¯ house to attend Josh and Jasmine¡¯s engagement party that night. Josh was the Bucham family¡¯s young master. He had a close rtionship with Julian, who valued him a lot. He was also York Corporation¡¯s administrative executive. Mr. York and Mr. Lewis were his close buddies, so his engagement was naturally grand. Josh doted on Jasmine a lot. Whether it was the engagement or the wedding that wasing afterward, he strived to make them the best. He wanted to leave Jasmine with good memories. ¡°See you tonight,¡± Duncan replied to Lily with a warm, deep voice. Lily took her car keys and stood up to leave. She came with Duncan, but they did not share a car. Duncan did not like sitting in the same car as her It was convenient If she drove her own car, she could go wherever she wanted ¡°Serenity.¡± Serenity had just walked out of the ward when she heard Chelsea calling her. Chelsea had waited for so long. Serenity finally came out. Chelsea could not be bothered that Zachary was right beside Serenity. She picked up her bag and jogged toward Serenity and her husband right away. Zachary¡¯s handsome face darkened, and his gaze was icy. He stared at Chelsea coldly. Chelsea flinched, but she braced herself and greeted him. ¡°Hi, Mr. York.¡± Zachary¡¯s lips were pressed tight. He did not reply to her greeting and continued staring at her coldly. It made Chelsea feel pressured. Chapter 1440 Chapter 1440 Chapter 1440 How did Serenity conquer such a cold, arrogant man? Chelsea criticized inwardly She would not be able to bear spending time with a man like that He was too cold! She did not dare look at Zachary anymore Instead, she smiled and said to Serenity, ¡°Serenity cant have a few words with you in private?¡± Serenity asked Chelsea, ¡°What is it that you can¡¯t say right now?¡± Chelsea took a quick nce at Zachary, then Serenity Indeed, Serenity was more pleasing to the eye Chelsea used to treat Serenity meanly and instigate her brother to quarrel with Liberty It was an indirect way of forcing Serenity to move out. Firstly, it was because she wanted to make space for her children. She had nned to send her children to the middle school in the city. Secondly, Chelsea was jealous of Serenity¡¯s youth and beauty. Liberty was beautiful before she married too. However, she did not bother maintaining it and bloated up like a ball. Her beauty before her marriage was gone Serenity was different. She adhered to exercising every day and had always maintained a model-like figure. It was known that opposites attract while likes repel. Chelsea grew to be jealous of Serenity. However, her mindset changed as she only felt gratitude toward Serenity. She felt no jealousy when looking at Serenity¡¯s pretty features. Instead, she found it pleasing and thought Serenity was beautiful and kind. A girl like that deserved to be favored by the heavens, get married to an outstanding man like Zachary, and enjoy glory and wealth. ¡°Serenity, I think we should still talk in private.¡± Serenity nced at her husband. She knew Chelsea was afraid of Zachary. She said to him, ¡°Babe, wait for me in the car.¡± Zachary said firmly, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you here. You can just talk to each other there. I can see you, but I won¡¯t be able to hear your conversation.¡± He pointed to the end of the corridor and asked Serenity and Chelsea to talk over there. He would be able to see them from the ward¡¯s door, but he could not listen to the contents of their conversation. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity did as he asked. She walked toward the end of the corridor first. Chelsea had no choice but to follow Serenity stopped when she reached the end. She turned to face Chelsea and asked coldly. ¡°What do you want to talk to me about, Chelsea?¡± ¡°Is your sister feeling better, Chelsea? We¡¯re concerned about your sister¡¯s injury, so we visit her every day You guys might find it annoying, but we¡¯re really worried Oh, there¡¯s also Sonny Would you like us to take care of Sonny for the time being? ¡°Well, you have to care for your sister. It¡¯ll be tiring if you have to take care of Sonny as well. There¡¯s also your store¡¯s business to manage. I¡¯m not working now, and Lucas has started preschool. I¡¯m free to help you. Sonny is my nephew too. I love him as much as you do ¡± Serenity refused. ¡°We have a lot of people. We can take good care of a child, so you don¡¯t need to worry, Chelsea. My sister is doing fine and recovering well She can return home to recuperate. after a week. Thank you for your concern.¡± Chelsea had offered to take care of Sonny to start the conversation. She knew the Hunt sisters would never let the Brown family care for Sonny anymore. It was all that evil woman, Jessica¡¯s fault. Sonny nearly got harmed while Liberty got hurt because of Jessica. Chelsea¡¯s brother was useless too. Sonny was still so young. Could he not have carried Sonny away? He could not even protect Sonny, yet he still wanted to bring Sonny back to live with the Browns What infuriated Chelsea the most was Hank busily running around for Jessica¡¯s matters after Jessica was taken away by the police. He even thought of begging the Hunt sisters countless times. He wanted Liberty to forgive Jessica. That way, Jessica¡¯s sentence would be lenient. Luckily, Chelsea¡¯s parents were on her side. They had been stopping Hank from begging Liberty directly and indirectly. No matter how stupid Chelsea was, she knew that if Hank dared ask Liberty to forgive Jessica, it would be tough for the Browns to meet Sonny in the future. Chapter 1441 Chapter 1441 Chapter 1441 Chelsea did not know what was good about Jessica that bewitched her brother. His son almost got into an ident because of Jessica. His ex-wife was injured too. However, he was still partial to Jessica. Chelsea was greatly dissatisfied with her brother. She felt guilty too. It would have been nice if her brother and Liberty were not divorced. Chelsea made mistakes in the past and was trying to correct them for her brother and Liberty to remarry. ¡°Just be straightforward, Jessica. There¡¯s no need to beat around the bush. I don¡¯t like talking to people who go in circles, wanting me to guess their thoughts.¡± Serenity could more or less guess Chelsea¡¯s intentions from her expression. The Browns simply wanted Hank and her sister to remarry. It was ridiculous. What did they take her sister for to be at their beck and call? The Browns would never have regretted it if Hank had not been in a dire situation. ¡°Serenity, I like your frankness. I¡¯ll be honest. Is Mr. Lewis pursuing your sister? I rushed here to visit your sisterte that night she got hurt, and I saw Mr. Lewis waiting outside the ICU. ¡°He was watching over your sister! I¡¯m experienced, and I have three children. I can see that Mr. Lewis treats your sister differently. He definitely likes your sister and wants to woo her, right? I knew it. There was an ulterior motive behind his treating Sonny so well. ¡°He wants to be Sonny¡¯s stepfather! But Sonny has a biological father who¡¯s not ignoring and still raising him. Sonny doesn¡¯t need a stepfather! ¡°Serenity, I think it¡¯s better for your sister to be with Hank. They¡¯ve known each other for over ten years They knew each other well. Although there had been unhappy moments, Hank knows his mistake now He¡¯ll change. We¡¯ll be on your sister¡¯s side as well. Things won¡¯t be the same as before ¡°Most importantly, this is for Sonny If Liberty and Hank reconcile, their family of three can be together again. It¡¯s the best for Sonny¡¯s growth. Serenity, your sister listens to you the most Please persuade your sister not to consider Mr. Lewis anymore Those wealthy men are flirty Who knows whether he¡¯s toying with your sister¡¯s heart?¡± Gerenity had guessed Chelsea¡¯s intentions, but she did not expect Chelsea to actually say it Well Chelsea had always been shameless Her attitude toward Serenity transformed a lot after she rescued lycas but her true nature remained unchanged A leopard could not change its spots N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. It was only Chelsea and Mrs. Brown, the mother-daughter pair, who dared to persistently pester Liberty. Even if they were scolded badly, they still did the same. Moving toward a set goal without wavering was probably the biggest merit Chelsea and her mother had. ¡°Chelsea.¡± Serenity said sternly, ¡°I don¡¯t want to repeat myself again. I¡¯ve said it enough. My sister has freedom now. It¡¯s her choice to choose whether to get married again and who she wants to marry. I¡¯ll respect my sister no matter what choice she makes. ¡°However, my sister can¡¯t remarry Hank! A sensible person won¡¯t repeat their mistakes. I think sister is sensible. She won¡¯t go back to her old lover. Besides, I feel like Hank still wishes to spend my his life with Jessica. Don¡¯t think I didn¡¯t notice the hesitation Hank had whenever you guys came. He was simply stopped by you guys. ¡°Why did he hesitate to speak? He must¡¯ve wanted to beg for forgiveness in Jessica¡¯s stead. He wants to get my sister to forgive Jessica so that she can get a lenient sentence. My sister was injured and almost lost her life. Sonny nearly fell into the hands of bad people too. Hank can disregard my sister¡¯s life, but Sonny is his biological son.¡± Chapter 1442 Chapter 1442 Chapter 1442 ¡°Hank¡¯s still thinking of begging for mercy for Jessica¡¯s sake, and his heart is on Jessica. He might¡¯ve felt regret, but he would never mourn divorcing my sister. My sister doesn¡¯t regret divorcing him too. Chelsea, I advise you not to look for my sister or me for this matter anymore.¡± After speaking, Serenity did not give Chelsea a chance to talk and left her behind. She walked toward Zachary, who was waiting for her at the door of the ward, without turning her head back. Zachary could not hear their conversation. When he saw his beloved wife¡¯s dark expression, he knew that the chat did not go well. ¡°Seren, should we make her leave?¡± ¡°Not this time,¡± Serenity replied. Then, she told the bodyguards, ¡°If the Brownse again in the future, chase them away. Don¡¯t let them see my sister or Sonny before my sister recovers.¡± After recovering, Liberty would continue running All You Can Eat and be back in business. She would not be able to keep the Browns out. That family was shameless. They would go to the breakfast diner every day and make a fuss. It would significantly impact the business at All You Can Eat. The Browns were pretty scared of Zachary at first. However, they noticed that Zachary was cold yet reasonable. Aside from making Hank lose his job, he had never done anything overboard to the Browns. Therefore, the Browns were not that afraid anymore. They would simply avoid Zachary¡¯s men and pester Liberty. The Brown family was relieved to have handed Sonny¡¯s custody rights to Liberty back then. No matter how shameless they were, they were still Sonny¡¯s biological father, grandparents, and aunt. Serenity, who wished to make the Browns miserable, would have to take it easy on them for Sonny¡¯s sake. ¡°Yes, Missus.¡° In fact, the bodyguards had always kept the Browns outside the ward every time they came. Unless Liberty was willing to meet her ex-husband, it was useless for the Brown family toe. every day After Serenity instructed the bodyguards, Zachary held her waist and left with her. ¡°What did that woman say to you that your expression looks so bad?¡± Zachary asked out of concern as they walked. ¡°What else? Their family consists of shameless people willing to embarrass themselves to arhieve their am They¡¯re still fixated on one thing. They are flustered seeing Mr Lewis was concerned about my sister and trying their best to stop them from getting together ¡°What right do they have to stop them? Do they think Hank is the best guy in the world? My sister won¡¯t remarry Hank even if all the men in the world die. They even used Sonny to negotiate After the ident, Hank¡¯s concern toward Sonny didn¡¯t evenst for two days.¡± Serenity added angrily, ¡°Some people say that little devils are hard to deal with The Browns are exactly that They¡¯re such difficult people. ¡°Let other devils go up against their kind Zachary soothed his wife and offered a solution. He said, ¡°Back then, the Brown family used your granddad and the others to stop your sister from getting a divorce. We can use them to deal with theText content ? N?velDrama.Org. Browns too ¡°Those people will be fighting against themselves while we enjoy the show and peace¡± Serenity said, ¡°This is a good idea. We can use my grandparents, but not my cousins. Noah will be useful too. That kid is afraid of me because I beat him up. He won¡¯t dare disobey my instructions¡± Noah truly did not want to be remembered by Serenity. He was scared because of her punches. Chapter 1443 Chapter 1443 Chapter 1443 Upon exiting the inpatient department and getting into Zachary¡¯s car, Serenity took her phone and removed her granddad¡¯s number from her list of blocked contacts. Next, she called him. She rarely got in touch with her extended family ever since she solved the problem of her old house. After experiencing Serenity¡¯s ferocity first-hand, her extended family, who had always been aiming to gain benefits through her, ceased to take advantage of her anymore. They had numbers, but all the people around Serenity were wealthy and powerful-they stood no chance. Additionally, Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt were hurt by their children¡¯s and grandchildren¡¯s attitudes toward their elderly care. They suddenly did not want to make a fuss anymore. In the past, Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt treated Serenity and Liberty heartlessly. They took so much of the sisters¡¯pensation and used it all to support their other children. It was so that their children would have money to start a family. Every family ended up living a good life. Even if the grandchildren had hit rock bottom at times and could no longer stay in Wiltspoon, they could still do something when they returned to the town. Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt¡¯s children and grandchildren had a generous amount of savings too. However, when Old Mrs. Hunt was sick and needed the children to pay her hospital bills, they were stingy and even fought over it. Old Mr. Hunt felt they had taken care of their children and grandchildren wholeheartedly, but it was taken for granted. He and his wife got very little in return. Their grandchildren even said that Old Mr. Hunt only raised their fathers and not them, so there was no need to look for them for elderly care. Nevertheless, his grandchildren still wanted a share of his fortune. Those words made Old Mr. Hunt disappointed. He no longer wanted to be instigated by their children and grandchildren to treat Serenity and Liberty meanly He was worried that he would have to count on Serenity and Liberty to bury him and his wife in the end As a result, the Hunts stayed still and did not disturb Serenity anymore Sid Mr Hunt was surprised and slightly delighted when he received Serenity¡¯s call he fed the family the between a grandparent and grandchild could never be truly broken as the itant far stood and flowed in Serenity There w are when he spoke. What made you call me? Are youing barito gurost that day Graforgot that you guys had your parents graves reluated to the cemetery.¡± After solving the housing issue, Serenity and Liberty found the location of their parents¡¯ graves through Noah. They returned to the city immediately and chose a spot in the cemetery for their parents. Then, they picked a suitable date for the relocation. It was more convenient for the sisters to pay their respects, and they did not have to worry about their extended family stopping them. It could not have been achieved without Zachary¡¯s help. Serenity had always felt as if she married a super-husband. No matter what difficulties she faced, he could solve it all for her as long as she told him about it. ¡°Granddad, I need Grandmom¡¯s and your help for something. It¡¯s best to get Noah on board too Serenity did not continue the conversation about ¡°that day¡±. It was an unpleasant memory. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity and Liberty, along with Mrs. Stone, were able to visit their parents¡¯ graves anytime they wished now, unlike before. In the past, even if they wanted to pay their respects, they did not even know where their rtives. had relocated their parents¡¯ graves. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Tell me. We¡¯ll definitely help if we can.¡± Chapter 1444 Chapter 1444 Chapter 1444 Serenity¡¯s words pleased Old Mr Hunt because she was willing toe to them for help when she had a problem. ¡°My sister got into an ident and was injured.¡± ¡°What ident? How¡¯s her injury? How did she get hurt? Did it happen a week ago? Mike and John had asked whether you contacted me during those few days. They refused to say anything. when I asked them what they wanted.¡± Old Mr. Hunt never paid attention to the inte, so he did not know Liberty was injured. The younger generation in the family knew, but no one told Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt. People of the town did not talk about it either. They thought things were awkward between the Hunt sisters and their grandparents. If Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt were to know that Liberty was hurt, they probably would be delighted. Therefore, no one in the town informed him. ¡°It happened a week ago. Liberty is recovering well, but her previous inws keep pestering her. They want her to remarry her ex-husband. However, my sister was hurt because of her ex- husband¡¯s new wife¡¯s actions. My sister and I want nothing to do with them anymore.¡± Serenity gave a summary. After listening, Old Mr. Hunt scolded the Browns. There was a conflict between him and Mrs. Brown. He did not finish the mission Mrs. Brown. assigned him even though he had epted tens of thousands of dors from her. She wanted the money back, but no one could take the money that had entered his pockets. Therefore, Old Mr. Hunt and Mrs. Brown bore grudges against each other. ¡°I heard your sister opened a breakfast diner, and its business is booming. There¡¯s so much profit every day, and you¡¯ve married into a wealthy family. You two also have a rich aunt. The Browns. must¡¯ve seen your sister¡¯s capabilities and benefits. That¡¯s why they want your sister to remarry. How shameless. That family has no shame! ¡°Serenity, what do your grandmom and I need to do?¡± Serenity did not talk about it right away Instead, she asked, ¡°Granddad, how are you and Grandmom doingtely? Do they give you any living allowance or food allowance?¡± Old Mrs Hunt had undergone major surgery. To Serenity, it was a given that Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s children should have provided their old mother with some allowance. Don¡¯t even talk about it I¡¯ve finally seen through everything They acted filial when it benefited Them and called me ¡®Dad When there was nothing in it for them, they would call me ¡®old man or old fart and not even address me as ¡®Dad¡¯ anymore¡± It was Sid Mr. Hunt first time admitting it to Serenity in the end your parents were the best When they were still around. they got worned whenever your grandmom or I felt unwell. They And bring is to the doctor and take care of us well ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s normal that you and Liberty hate me L¡­ Hah!¡± After having experienced so many things, Old Mr Hunt was old. He had no choice but to admit that the third son he disliked the most was the filial son. ¡°They¡¯ll pay me the rent every month Let¡¯s do it this way I¡¯ll transfer the rent they pay me to you. as Grandmom¡¯s and your allowance from now on.¡± Serenity had requested her uncles to pay her rent for the house Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt were living in. It was only a little over a thousand dors per month. Serenity and Liberty did not care about money. They simply wanted justice. ¡°Serenity, you need your grandmom and me to attack the Browns verbally, right? Okay. Leaving it to us will be perfect. You don¡¯t have to pay us money. Of course, I¡¯ll ept it happily if you¡¯re willing to give me.¡± If the rent was used as Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt¡¯s allowance, they could save their pension and spend it slowly. Old Mr. Hunt got more eager as there was something in it for him. ¡°You just have to ensure the Browns stop pestering my sister and disturbing her peaceful life, Granddad.¡± ¡°Okay. I know what to do. Your grandmom and I do this best.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Serenity mocked inwardly, ¡®It seems like Granddad has some self-awareness.¡¯ Chapter 1445 Chapter 1445 Chapter 1445 After ending the call with her granddad, Serenity held the phone in her hand and said to Zachary, ¡°I got external help to go against the Browns and return my sister peace ording to your suggestion, but I don¡¯t know how things will turn out ¡°We¡¯ll find out after some time I think the effect will be great¡± Zachary was confident in his idea. ¡°Seren, you don¡¯t have to be so worried. We should think now about what dress and jewelry you¡¯ll wear tonight¡± Serenity nced at him. ¡°You sound like you want to steal everyone¡¯s attention away from Mr. Bucham.¡± Zachary said smugly, ¡°I don¡¯t even have to steal. I¡¯m in the limelight in every venue I appear in, and I make Josh pale inparison.¡± Serenity was speechless. He was confident that he could beat Josh, but she had no intentions of taking the spotlight away from her best friend. She smiled and said, ¡°My dresses are the ones you or Aunt Audrey bought. I¡¯ve only worn the dresses I purchased several times. Will I have the chance to wear the dresses I bought myself to events where I¡¯m apanying you?¡± Serenity gave the bossy man a sidelong nce. She said, ¡°The weather¡¯s turning hot nowadays Don¡¯t make me wear overly conservative dresses. It¡¯s hot.¡± The dresses Zachary gave her were never revealing. However, some were very conservative and better worn during winter or spring. It was already April, and Wiltspoon¡¯s daytime was getting scorching hot. She would feel stuffy if she wore a winter dress. Zachary chuckled. ¡°I¡¯ll let you choose tonight.¡± Just as Serenity mentioned, the dresses he gave her were not revealing. She could wear any one of them as long as it was one that he gave to her ¡°It¡¯s still early You can get some rest after returning home. I¡¯ll wake you up in the evening.¡± Zachary looked at the dark circles underneath her eyes worriedly. Serenity leaned against his shoulder and yawned. She said, ¡°Let¡¯s rest together. You¡¯re more exhausted than I am.¡± He had to go to work to handle official business and stay up at night in the hospital with her. It was more tiring for him. Zachary said dotingly, ¡°Okay¡± Serenity closed her eyes to rest and did not say anything more. They leaned into each other¡¯s embrace in silence, surrounded by happiness. Upon rousing from her sleep in the evening, Serenity heard that her inws hade again. She did not dare sleep in and quickly got up. She went downstairs after washing up. ¡°Dad, Mom.¡± They were chatting with Zachary casually in the living room. Serenity greeted them and sat down beside her man. Tania saw that Serenity had not changed into her dress. She smiled and said, ¡°Why haven¡¯t your changed into your dress, Serenity?¡± ¡°I just woke up.¡± Serenity chuckled embarrassedly. She just wanted to take a short nap. However, she did not expect to wake up at that hour She was truly exhausted these days. Since her sister had gotten a lot better, Serenity could sleep soundly One day after Liberty had regained consciousness, she told Serenity that she saw their parents when she was unconscious, and that it was their parents who pushed her back. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Serenity teared up upon hearing those words. She thought, ¡®If it weren¡¯t for Mom and Dad pushing her back, I would¡¯ve really lost her.¡¯ She felt a lingering fear thinking about it. Chapter 1446 Chapter 1446 Chapter 1446 Serenity had not been able to sleep well for several consecutive days after Liberty mentioned that to her Every time she woke up with a start at midnight, she would surreptitiously grope her way to Liberty¡¯s bed. She would stretch out her hand to check Liberty¡¯s breathing. Not until she confirmed that Liberty was still alive would she feel at ease Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Having lost both her parents at a young age, Serenity experienced the pain of losing her loved ones. Therefore, she feared losing her only sister ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯m taking you upstairs to get changed.¡± The Yorks and the Buchams were on friendly terms. Now that Josh got engaged, Tania would certainly do the Buchams the honor of attending Josh¡¯s engagement party. What was more, Tania¡¯s rtives and the Buchams had close rtionships. Tania¡¯s rtives would also make an appearance tonight. Serenity rose to her feet gently and walked upstairs with Tania. Soon, Serenity had changed into a gown. She put on light makeup and a pair of high heels. She brought along the engagement gift she had prepared for her best friend before heading downstairs with Tania. Liam and Zachary were waiting for Serenity and Tania in the dining room. Seeing Serenity and Tania walk down the stairs, Liam and Zachary greeted their beloved wives respectively. Zachary said, ¡°Seren, go and eat something to fill your stomach first.¡± At noon, Serenity hardly ate anything. She could not possibly eat to her heart¡¯s content at the Buchams¡¯ ce. Zachary was worried that Serenity was starving. Serenity had long since felt hungry, but she was too shy to say it. Coincidentally, Zachary was thoughtful enough to let her fill her stomach first. The four of them were ready to leave the house. On the other hand, Callum was still pestering Camryn to visit the Buchams with him. ¡°Camryn, I¡¯ve helped you quite a lot. I¡¯m asking a favor from you now, yet you turned me down. How disloyal of you.¡± Callum stuck to Camryn like glue. Camryn was watering some nts. As she listened to Callum¡¯s grumbles, Camryn stopped in her tracks. She turned around and faced Callum before she said nonchntly. ¡°I¡¯m very thankful for your help. Mr. Callum I always treated you to a meal as a token of appreciation after receiving your help We don¡¯t owe each other now ¡°I can¡¯t attend social gatherings with you. This is what your girlfriend or wife should do.¡± Callum looked at her and said, ¡°Your eldest uncle asked me to bear a responsibility toward you. To me, you¡¯re my girlfriend.¡± Camryn was speechless. After pausing for a moment, she replied, ¡°Mr Callum, everyone has been sitting in judgment over me ever since I sued my uncle How will others see you when you take me to the Buchams¡¯ ce? I don¡¯t mind being criticized, but I don¡¯t want you to go through the same thing.¡± ¡°You ce righteousness above family loyalty to take revenge on your dad¡¯s behalf, so why will they sit in judgment over you? You don¡¯t have to be bothered about what your elder aunts say They side with your uncle! After Camryn sued her biological mother and uncle for killing her father twenty years ago, two of Mr Newman¡¯s sisters came over to chew her out. If it had not been for Callum¡¯s presence, Camryn¡¯s two elder aunts would have destroyed Spring Blossoms. Camryn¡¯s youngest aunt was the only one taking her side. However, her youngest aunt was very concerned about her. The police had investigated Camryn¡¯s eldest uncle, and he was very likely to be sentenced. Even so, he would be sentenced formitting other offenses with her biological mother instead of the murder of her biological father. Currently, there was no evidence in support of her uncle¡¯s murder of her biological father. Her recording might not be convincing enough. Mr. Newman hired the bestwyer in Wiltspoon for himself and Camryn¡¯s mother. Camryn¡¯s youngest aunt was worried that Camryn would lose her foothold in Wiltspoon. Although Camryn did not do anything wrong, her two elder aunts would not let her off. They were married to families in Wiltspoon who were quite well off. Recently, her aunts had been spreading rumors and badmouthing her. This affected the Camryn¡¯s flower shop business. Instead of buying flowers, most of the customers visited her flower shoptely to see what Camryn, who ced righteousness above family loyalty, looked like. Chapter 1447 Chapter 1447 Chapter 1447 ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mr. Callum ¡± Camryn still turned Callum down. Callum took the watering can from her hand Then, he dragged her to the counter and sat down He said, ¡°Camryn, please sit down. I have something to tell you.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Callum noticed that the two store workers were out delivering flowers to customers In fact, he purposely called to order two bouquets of flowers to send them away Due to her two elder aunts, the business of Spring Blossoms had gone downhill. ¡°You¡¯ve always wanted to know why I approached and helped you, right?¡± While facing Callum, Camryn kept quiet. As much as she wanted to know, she would not be able to fish for his answer if he was silent on it. She remained baffled When he first appeared in her flower shop, she was sure that it was their first time meeting each. other ¡°After the new year, Nana sent me two photos. One is for me, whereas the other is for Kevin. The one I have is a photo of you.¡± Camryn was dumbfounded. Since when did Old Mrs. York have her photo? Old Mrs. York even passed Camryn¡¯s photo to Callum. What did this signify? Camryn tried her best to recall, yet she could not think back to when she had met Old Mrs. York. She was invisible among the Newmans, whereas Old Mrs. York was the head of the Yorks. Not only did Old Mrs. York hold the highest position in the family, but she was also well-liked in Wiltspoon. Camryn and Old Mrs. York had nothing to do with each other. After making that remark, Callum did not continue. After a while, Camryn could not help but ask, ¡°Mr. Callum, how did Old Mrs. York get my photo? She passed it to you, and what does that mean?¡± He did not make his words definite, fuelling her curiosity. This man treated her very well, but sometimes, he could be nasty. ¡°Take a guess.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t ¡± Camryn said honestly, ¡°I need you to clear my doubt, Mr Callum.¡± Callum extended his hand to remove her sses and said, ¡°You put on such a big pair of sses when your face is small. It has nearly covered your entire face. You look good without sses. ¡°Camryn, just call me Callum from now on.¡± Camryn fumbled around to get back her sses from him as she was used to wearing them. Callum dodged her hand and gently ced the pair of sses on the edge of the counter so that she could not reach it. He even spread his hands. When she fumbled around, she touched his hand. The moment Camryn touched his hand, she quickly withdrew her hand. ¡°Camryn, I felt ticklish when you touched me.¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, it was because I touched your hand by ident!¡± Callum¡¯s wording was flirty. Camryn was no fool. She just did not want to face it. Chapter 1448 Chapter 1448 Chapter 1448 ¡°Nana said the girl in the photo would be the future wife she has chosen for me She wants me to marry the girl in the photo within one year, or she¡¯ll kick me out of the house¡± Camryn was at a loss for words. Why would this turn out to be the answer? How could Old Mrs. York possibly make Camryn the wife of Callum? Camryn was blind. ¡°It¡¯s April now There are still several more months for me to pursue you. Let¡¯s do it step by step We¡¯ll get into a rtionship, followed by engagement and marriage That¡¯s it Oh, no, I actually don¡¯t have to worry about being kicked out of the house No, it¡¯s. I don¡¯t know how to say it now He felt that whatever he said would make Camryn feel as though he simply wanted toplete his mission. Callum admitted that he approached Camryn with the aim ofpleting his mission However, when he got along with Camryn, he found her quite nice. Whenever he tricked her, she would look angry and helpless. After Mrs. Newman was arrested and Mr. Newman was investigated, Camryn could actually settle the Newmans¡¯ business outside the city through phone calls. If Callum had not heard Camryn make the phone calls, he would not believe that the blind girl had secretly prepared for it. At that moment, it hit Callum that he did not know the blind girl well enough. He wanted to have a deep understanding of her ¡°Camryn, when I first came to meet you, I already treated you as my wife.¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°Regardless of whether you find it surprising or unbelievable, Nana has always acted. incredulously Anyhow, I¡¯ve already treated you as my wife, so I¡¯ll pursue you. After you fall in love with me, we¡¯ll get engaged and have a wedding. There are eight more months before the new year I suppose we can make it in time.¡± If possible, he wanted to have a child within one year. In that respect, his life would be perfect. N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. Worried that Camryn would drive him out, Callum did not dare express that intention. The girl could garner an explosive temper when she got angry. Never in Camryn¡¯s wildest dreams did she think that Callum¡¯s sudden appearance in her life was Old Mrs York¡¯s order More unbelievably Old Mrs York had asked Callum to pursue Camryn and marry her Eve brought the evening gown, which is in my car I¡¯ll bring it to the shop and you can change it With that, Callum leaped to his feet and walked away. Before Camryn could recover from her musings, he had already walked out of the flower shop. Soon, an evening gown was ced in front of Camryn. Callum looked at Camryn with a burning gaze and said, ¡°When you attended the Marshalls¡¯ banquet the other day, you looked stunning in the evening gown. But that night, you didn¡¯t wear the gown for my sake. ¡°Tonight, I hope you¡¯ll do it for me and apany me to attend Josh¡¯s engagement party. ¡°Although it¡¯s an engagement party, it¡¯s a grand one. Besides the big shots in Wiltspoon who¡¯ll bring their wives along, big shots from other cities will be attending the party as well. The Newmans¡¯ business is mostly outside the city. You¡¯ll need to socialize after you take over Newman Enterprise.¡± Callum¡¯sst sentence was meant to lure her. After Callum heard that Camryn could handle Newman Enterprise¡¯s business through phone calls, he understood her underlying motive for her decade long forbearance. Not only did she want to find out the actual cause of her father¡¯s death, but she also wanted to take control of Newman Enterprise. He had no idea when Camryn started to have a hand in Newman Enterprise. Given that she was a blind florist, how could she get the people in Newman Enterprise to trust and obey her? There were too many secrets and stories about her. He had been under the impression that there was something wrong with Nana¡¯s taste. There was nothing wrong with Nana¡¯s taste. In fact, he was too superficial and did not know Camryn well enough. ¡°You¡¯re good friends with my eldest sister-inw. Ms. Sox is her best friend. Considering that you¡¯re Ms. Sox¡¯s acquaintance, don¡¯t you want to send your regards to Ms. Sox?¡± Camryn stayed quiet for a long time. Atst, she stretched out her hand, whichnded on the evening gown in front of her. Chapter 1449 Chapter 1449 Chapter 1449 At the Buchams, Zachary¡¯s exclusive cars came early. Zachary was Josh¡¯s good buddy and boss. He was also Josh and Jasmine¡¯s matchmaker Of course, Zachary and his wife arrived early The Bucham and Sox elders were present. Seeing Liam and Tania get out of the car, the Bucham and Sox elders went to greet them first, followed by Josh and Jasmine. As Liam and Tania did not know Jasmine¡¯s parents, Josh¡¯s parents introduced Jasmine¡¯s parents to Tania. After shaking each other¡¯s hands and making small talk, Mrs Sox stared at Tania and said with a smile, ¡°Mrs. York looks like Zachary¡¯s sister. She has such a youthful appearance¡± After getting out of the car, Serenity walked over and overheard Mrs Sox¡¯s words Sheughed and added, ¡°Exactly. When I shopped around with my mom, other people thought we were sisters.¡± Tania grinned and replied, ¡°Both of you know how to make me happy¡± Mrs. Sox said, ¡°Mrs. York, we¡¯re not trying to make you happy We¡¯re telling the truth As someone who watched Serenity grow up, I know she¡¯s an honest person. What she¡¯s saying is true¡± Serenity and Jasmine were best friends. Mrs. Sox usually took good care of Serenity Whenever there was good food in the house, Mrs. Sox would ask Serenity toe over for a meal or get Jasmine to take the food to the shop for Serenity. With this mere point, Tania was ready to show respect for Mrs. Sox. She had a hearty conversation with Mrs. Sox. Mrs. Bucham weed everyone into the house. Serenity finally found time to have a private conversation with her best friend. ¡°Is Liberty getting better?¡± Jasmine first asked about Liberty¡¯s condition. She had been busy with her engagement. All she did was call Liberty to ask about her condition in the past two days. She did not visit Liberty in the hospital. ¡°She¡¯s recovering well. She¡¯ll be discharged after a week to rest at home. My sister asked me to bring you this engagement gift. She hopes that you and Mr. Bucham stay sweet and live happily ever after till a ripe old age.¡± Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°Help me thank Liberty. Josh and I will stay sweet until we¡¯re old. Why didn¡¯t you bring Sonny over?¡± ¡°I was thinking about bringing Sonny over, but my sister didn¡¯t allow it. She said Sonny would be like a mobile third wheel Sonny was angry about it, saying that he was Sonny, not a third wheel At the mention of her cute nephew, Serenity could not stopughing. That kid hated being called a third wheel the most. When Zachary called Sonny a third wheelst time, Sonny was mad. Sonny emphasized that he was not a third wheel but Sonny Brown! Jasmine was amused. Zachary and Josh walked over. ¡°Honey.¡± The two men addressed their wives as ¡®honey¡¯. Since Josh and her engagement party was already being held, Jasmine did not mind being called ¡® honey¡¯. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll serve the guests first.¡± As the main character tonight, Jasmine needed to attend to every guest. ¡°Alright, go ahead. We¡¯ll continue with our talk next time.¡± Jasmine walked toward Josh. She hooked her hand around his arm and walked out of the vi to wee the guests. Zachary walked up to Serenity and said softly, ¡°Let me stroll around the Buchams¡¯ vi with you. Once all the guests show up, we¡¯ll have to speak on stage since we¡¯re the matchmakers.¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Both of us have to speak on stage, huh?¡± ¡°We¡¯re both their matchmakers.¡± Serenity hooked her hand around Zachary¡¯s arm. ¡°Okay. This will be the chance for me to express my wishes for my best friend.¡± Chapter 1450 Chapter 1450 Chapter 1450 *Josh and Ms. Sox will live happily just like we do.¡± The elders of the two families were extremely grateful to Zachary and his wife The Buchams felt that even though Zachary was married, he even helped his good buddy by introducing Jasmine to Josh. He had such a strong sense of honor toward Josh. The Soxes felt the same. The Bucham elders were content with Jasmine Now that the Sox elders had their son-inw, Drake had to get out of the way, let alone Jasmine If Jasmine criticized Josh in front of her parents, her parents would re at her Jasmine always grumbled about it in front of Josh. Ever since she got together with Josh, her parents seemed to have be his parents. Josh was smug about it The guests who came to attend the engagement party drove here However, a few guests were an exception as they came by private jet The private jetnded on the ramp that belonged to the head of the Bucham household. Out of curiosity, Serenity asked the man beside her, ¡°Do you know the guests who came by private jet?¡± ¡°If I¡¯m not mistaken, it should be the Queens from Jensburg. All the other guests the Buchams invited have arrived regardless of whether they¡¯re from Wiltspoon or other cities. The Queens from Jensburg are the only ones who haven¡¯t turned up The Queens were wealthy, so it was unsurprising that they had a private jet Zachary had his own private jet and luxury yacht as well. ¡°The Queens from Jensburg? Is it Hayden Queen¡¯s family?¡± To Serenity, it was a regret that Old Mrs. York did not bring her along to Jensburg. Therefore, Serenity did not get to watch any good shows. She did not expect the Queens from Jensburg to send some people to attend Josh¡¯s engagement party and convey their wishes. It was undeniable that the Buchams were well-connected. Many guests from other regions were big shots who were rich and powerful. No wonder Josh could manage any task that Zachary assigned to him no matter how difficult it was. It was all because of the Buchams¡¯ powerful connections. ¡°Yes¡± Zachary gently tapped his wife¡¯s pretty nose and said with an indulgent smile, ¡°Later, I¡¯ll introduce Mr Queen to you so that both of you can get along and bond with each other. ¡°Hayden has been pretending to be a man for over 20 years She¡¯s cold and distant, so she might not be nice to get along with.¡± Serenity said with confidence, ¡°I firmly believe that I can socialize well. I can make friends with anyone. Since Callum has started to pursue Camryn, what I¡¯m most interested in now is Kevin and Hayden¡¯s rtionship.¡± In Jensburg, very few people knew that Mr. Queen was a woman. If someone suspected that Mr. Queen was not a man, Hayden would ask her twin brother, Hugh, to make an appearance. They both looked very much alike. Those who did not know them would not be able to distinguish between the two. They would think that Hugh was Hayden. Serenity wanted to know how Kevin would make Hayden admit that she was a woman. ¡°But babe, if Hayden shows up as a man, will other people misunderstand us when I approach. her?¡± Serenity was aware that Hayden was a woman, but the rest was not If she made small talk with Hayden, other people would gossip about them. Zachary was speechless. He neglected this point. ¡°Babe, will you be jealous if others gossip about Hayden and me?¡± Zachary darted a deep nce at her and asked, ¡°What do you think?¡± Serenity chuckled. She quickly hooked her arm around his and said gently, ¡°I love you most No. one treats me better than you do.¡± Zachary often sumbed to the green-eyed monster. As long as Hayden continued pretending to be a man, Serenity had to keep a distance from her. Otherwise, she would be gossiped about and Zachary would be jealous. Even though Zachary knew that Hayden was a woman, she looked exactly like a man. Thus, he could not guarantee that he would not feel jealous.Material ? N?velDrama.Org. As Serenity and Jasmine were good friends, Zachary would sometimes me Jasmine for distracting Serenity¡¯s attention from him. Chapter 1451 Chapter 1451 Chapter 1451 Zachary¡¯s eyes settled on Serenity A momentter, he whispered something in her ear Serenity could not help but pinch his arm.. Zachary was not angry. Instead, he smiled and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll bring you out and take a look. around.¡± Serenity was delighted. At the Buchams¡¯ courtyard, the couple saw the chairman of Queen Enterprise, Mr Donald, walking into the house with his wife and ¡°sons¡± under the escort of the Buchams and Soxes. When Kevin caught sight of the sturdy and cool ¡°man¡± standing behind Mr Donald, his gaze deepened. He did not know that the Queens from Jensburg woulde over While holding a ss of wine, Elisa walked up to Serenity and said to Zachary, ¡°Zachary, I¡¯d like to have a private conversation with Seren. Please step aside.¡± Zachary glowered at Elisa with a grim expression. This woman actually snatched his wife in public. Elisa enjoyed watching how Zachary looked grim yet he dared not do anything to her ¡°Babe.¡± Serenity called Zachary sweetly, which made him surrender straight away. Just as he turned around and walked a few steps away, he heard Elisa say to Serenity, ¡°Seren, that man is very handsome. He¡¯s tall, attractive, and slightly cool. I didn¡¯t know there could be someone more handsome than Zachary.¡± Zachary decided not to step aside. He returned and stood firm beside Serenity. With his sturdy and attractive figure, he wanted to remind Elisa that it was fine to look at handsome guys, but she should not lead Serenity astray! Serenity turned her eyes to the two sturdy and attractive men behind Mr. Donald. After that, she looked at Zachary and said with a smile, ¡°In my eyes, no one can hold a candle to Zachary.¡± Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Elisa turned her gaze to Zachary andughed. She then said to him yfully, ¡°Mr. Zack, you pricked your ears like a rabbit.¡± ¡°What matters is that Seren continues to love me.¡± Elisa was at a loss for words. Zachary covertly ced Serenity¡¯s arm around his and said to Elisa in an indifferent manner, ¡°Are you done? All the guests are here, and the engagement party is about to begin. Seren and I are the matchmakers, so we can¡¯t apany you to admire handsome guys.¡± ¡°Mr Johnson¡± Zachary called Remy who was standing nearby. Remy was the representative of the Johnsons to attend the party tonight. He was always following behind Elisa, but he kept a distance of three to four meters from her However, Elisa was unaware of it. Upon hearing Zachary¡¯s shout, Remy turned around and walked toward the three of them. ¡°Mr. Zachary.¡± After addressing Zachary, Remy greeted Serenity and her cousin gently. Zachary said, ¡°Mr. Johnson, Ms. Stone admires the young masters of the Queens. You may admire them with Ms. Stone. I need to bring my wife into the house.¡± Remy replied with a slight smile, ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll apany Elisa to admire the handsome guys.¡± After handing Elisa over to Remy, Zachary dragged his woman away. Chapter 1452 Chapter 1452 Chapter 1452 Only after Zachary and Serenity walked far away did Elisa approach Remy andin softly.¡± Zachary is a domineering, narrow-minded person. He was worried my cousin would be obsessed with the twin brothers of the Queens, so he promptly took Seren away Remy maintained a slight smile. He gave Elisa the impression that he was an elegant gentleman. ¡°Mr. Zachary pampers his wife. Indeed, the twins of the Queens are brilliant. Although I¡¯m not close to them, I¡¯ve heard about the twin brothers. Hayden Queen is the president of Queen Enterprise. Mr. Donald trusts him fully and has high expectations of him. ¡°Hugh set up his own business and is unwilling to take over his family business. It¡¯s said that Mr Donald wants to hand Queen Enterprise over to his younger son.¡± Elisa instinctively asked, ¡°Why is Mr. Donald so biased? Mr Queen has the ability to take over Queen Enterprise, yet Mr Donald is thinking about handing it to his younger son. Is Mr Donald trying to turn the brothers into enemies when they fight for power? This is most unfavorable to the development of a family business.¡± Elisa had two older brothers Her eldest brother had the ability to take over Stone Group As for her second brother, he was not interested in business, so there was no use in training him. In the end, her parents said that her second brother was a good-for-nothing. Nevertheless, her second brother excelled in the field he was fond of Elisa felt that everyone had different strengths. Parents should observe what their children excelled in before they picked the sessor In that case, the children would not turn against each other. After Clive took over the family business, Anthony was doing very well in the field he was fond of Without any conflict of interest, the rtionship between her brothers was not affected. Her brothers were on good terms. On the other hand, the Yorks were well known for their great family style It was very rare to be able to achieve that, regardless of whether it was among wealthy or average families. Zachary¡¯s cousins were in different fields. Their elders arranged their work ording to their preferences and strengths. The most capable person was willing to carry the burden of being the sessor. Therefore, the Yorks were united and prosperous. Their business was always thriving. The Queens¡¯ status in Jensburg was simr to the Yorks¡¯ in Wiltspoon. As the chairman and father, Mr Donald surely knew who was more capable of taking over Queen Enterprise ¡°That¡¯s what I heard. It¡¯s not known whether Mr. Donald will eventually change his mind. Personally, I agree with you. Having said that, that¡¯s the Queens¡¯ business. Regarding Mr. Donald¡¯s arrangement, we can¡¯t have a hand in it as we¡¯re merely outsiders.¡± Remy too believed that Mr. Donald¡¯s decision to hand Queen Enterprise to his younger son was unwise Mr. Queen was capable and also the eldest son of the family He had been the president of Queen Enterprise for years. He had established a foothold in thepany as well as the business. industry in Jensburg If Mr Donald insisted on making Mr. Hayden step aside, it would easily. cause an uproar in Queen EnterpriseBelongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Of course, those leaders in Jensburg would probably look forward to seeing the two brothers turn against each other ¡°That¡¯s true Let¡¯s wait and see.¡± Elisa sighed. Oftentimes, siblings turned against each other mainly due to their parents¡¯ bias. Mr Hugh shared the same mother as Mr. Hayden. Also, he was a twin. Despite his capability, he was not highly looked upon. That would be a source of chaos in the family. Elisa thought over it. After returning hometer, she would mention it to Clive Given that Stone Group had some businesses in Jensburg, they should pay attention to Queen Enterprise¡¯s activity. If the Queen brothers turned against each other and caused an uproar in thepany, Stone Group might be able to take advantage of the situation. ¡°Elisa, are you interested in Mr. Hugh?¡± With a vague smile, Remy asked her. When Elisa fixed her eyes on him, his handsome face. revealed a look of curiosity. ¡°No. I simply admire his looks. Now, I have no interest in men who are cold and arrogant.¡± She had failed terribly in her attempt to win Zachary¡¯s heart. She would only treat those men whose personality was simr to Zachary¡¯s as beautiful scenery to appreciate. She would not fall for them. Only after Elisa got over Zachary did it strike her that men with that kind of personality were unsuitable for her Chapter 1453 Chapter 1453 Chapter 1453 Remy looked at Elisa smilingly and said, ¡°I too think the Queen brothers don¡¯t suit you, but it¡¯s nice to appreciate them as beautiful scenery.¡± Elisa nodded and felt that Remy knew her quite well. Once all the guests had arrived, the engagement party officially began. At the sight of Jasmine¡¯s blissful look, Elisa said in admiration, ¡°Among my three friends, two of them are in love and blissful. Cece and I are still single. It¡¯s really admirable to see how happy Seren and Jasmine are.¡± Zachary and Josh were people who could be counted on. They were faithful in rtionships. Those who could win their hearts and be their wives would be greatly pampered forever. Who would dislike being pampered? ¡°Your best friend has gotten over her past rtionship, hasn¡¯t she?¡± Remy casually asked. Then, he said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry too much. There¡¯s sure to be a suitable man who walks into your life and gives you happiness in the future.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Even though Cece imed that it doesn¡¯t matter, how can she easily get over the rtionship that hadsted for years? It was difficult and agonizing for me to get over my feelings for Zachary as well.¡± Toward the end of Elisa¡¯s sentence, her expression carried a sense of loneliness. Since Zachary ended up being her cousin¡¯s husband, she had no choice but to get over him. Seeing how well Zachary treated Serenity, Elisa acted as though she had gotten over him on the surface. Privately, she would always hide under her nket because she would toss and turn in agony and have trouble sleeping the whole night. Ever since Remy became her new neighbor, the number of times she thought about Zachary had reduced probably because she often chatted with Remy. Besides, being involved in investment distracted her. When she saw Zachary and Serenity being lovey¨Cdovey, all she felt for them was admiration. There was not a tinge of jealousy. She had really gotten over Zachary. Even so, not everyone could get over their rtionships as Elisa did. ¡°Cece is also here tonight. I saw her just now and greeted her, but her mom soon called her away.¡± Elisa¡¯s eyes swept the crowd as she wanted to search for her best friend. With so many guests, she had no idea where all of them were seated. She did not spot her best friend. Remy looked at Elisa and wanted to ask her what she thought of him. However, he bit his tongue. It was not the right timing yet. Currently, Elisa had really gotten over Zachary. Nevertheless, the Stones still guarded against Remy as if he were a thief. Every time he shamelessly visited the Stones or sponged food off them, Mrs. Stone¡¯s face would be grave. The Stones looked down on him for not being a Wiltspoon local. He was in no rush to get together with Elisa. If Elisa fell in love with her, he would stand a great chance of seeding. ¡°Elisa, you¡¯re bold in expressing your love and hatred. I admire girls like you.¡± Elisaughed and replied, ¡°Thank you. I know I have quite a good personality. I think those who dislike and badmouth me are simply jealous of me.¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. They¡¯re jealous of you.¡± Elisa possessed enviable qualities. It was now time for a toast to the engaged couples on stage. As their matchmakers, Zachary and his wife returned to their seats. Coincidentally, Zachary was seated with the four members of the Queens. Besides, the head of the Buchams and Kevin were at the same table. Kevin was called over by Zachary to sit here. Kevin knew full well that his brother and sister¨Cinw had perceived Hayden as his woman ever since his nana chose Hayden for him. Given that it was rare for Hayden to make a trip to Wiltspoon, his brother would definitely arrange for him to get along with Hayden. At the moment, Kevin was seated right beside Hayden. ¡°Mr. Queen.¡±Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1454 Chapter 1454 Chapter 1454 The minute Kevin sat down, he greeted Hayden. All Hayden did was nod at him in N?velDrama.Org owns all ? content. acknowledgment. Those seated there had high social standing. They had a joyful talk with one another. Serenity secretly observed Hayden. Hayden and her twin brother were exactly the same in appearance. Both of them were wearing business suits. Anyone could easily tell that they were siblings. Deep down, Serenity admired Grandma May¡¯s fantastic taste. She could actually pay attention to Hayden who was in Jensburg. She even concealed Hayden¡¯s identity for over 20 years and matched her with Kevin. As soon as Hayden felt Serenity¡¯s eyes on her, she turned her gaze to Serenity. Serenity was caught looking at Hayden. Serenity did not dodge it. Instead, she openly met Hayden¡¯s deep gaze. ¡°Mr. Queen.¡± Serenity took the initiative to greet Hayden with a smile. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Hayden greeted Serenity back with a deep voice. However, the deep voice was a pretense. Serenity wondered if Hayden was tired of faking a deep voice. ¡°Mrs. York, are you staring at me because I look untidy? I hope you can let me know.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°No. It¡¯s just rare to see a pair of twins who are so identical, so I can¡¯t help but stare at you. I¡¯m sorry, Mr. Queen.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. Whenever my brother and I show up together, everyone will look at us this way.¡± Mrs. Queen chuckled and said, ¡°A lot of people can¡¯t distinguish them. Sometimes, their father. can¡¯t differentiate them as well.¡± Whenever Mr. Donald mistook his son for another, Mrs. Queen would criticize him for raising their daughter as a son. Mrs. Queen gave birth to a pair of fraternal twins, who ended up being raised. as male twins. Mrs. Queen forbade Hayden from dressing like a man after thetter returned home. She wanted Hayden to dress like a woman, but Hayden disobeyed her. ording to Hayden, she had always dressed like a man as far as she could remember. Mr. Donald introduced Hayden to the public as his son, so she was used to being a son of the family and refused to dress like a woman. She had never dressed like a woman so far. Mrs. Queen was exasperated and helpless. Hayden was not young anymore. She would need to dress like a woman sooner orter, then marry a good man. Could Hayden want to be a man forever and marry a woman? In Jensburg, many young women of the elite wanted to marry Hayden, who was the ideal son¨Cin-w for their mothers. Serenityughed and said, ¡°Both of you are really alike. Mr. Queen and Mr. Hugh have the same aura.¡± Many twins might look very alike, but they had different personalities. The Queen twins had simr personalities in that they were considered cold and domineering. Hayden darted a nce at her twin brother. In fact, this was not how her brother typically behaved. He faked it so that he could match her. Everyone was not close, but they soon had amon topic since they were in the business industry. Kevin had a glib tongue. Seated beside Hayden, he could talk to her the entire night. His talk was so fruitful that Hayden did not find him garrulous. Serenity secretly said to her husband, ¡°I admire Nana the most.¡± Nana had such fantastic taste! Zachary chuckled. ¡°Nana has us in her clutches.¡± Chapter 1455 Chapter 1455 Chapter 1455 Serenity smiled. Zachary¡¯s nana was the best grandmother she had ever met. Her grandmom was worlds apart from his nana. ¡°You should treasure Nana. Having a dozen of your nana is never enough for me.¡± Zachary was closest to Nana. He said, ¡°Elders are treasures.¡± After Serenity fell quiet for a moment, she said, ¡°It depends. Some elders like to kick up a fuss and bring chaos to the younger generation. In that case, those elders aren¡¯t treasures.¡± Zachary held her hand. ¡°Mr. Bucham and Jasmine areing for a toast.1 Serenity refused to talk further about the unhappy things. She immediately changed the topic. Josh and Jasmine went to each table to drink a toast. When they reached Zachary¡¯s table, Zachary mocked his buddy yfully. ¡°Josh, you¡¯re grinning from ear to ear tonight. Your cheeks are as red as a tomato. Is it because you¡¯ve drunk orughed too much?¡± Josh burst intoughter before he responded, ¡°Both.¡± He and Jasmine raised their sses to Mr. Donald and his wife. Mr. Donald and his wife were the oldest at the table. The rest were from the same generation as Josh. Seeing his beaming cousin, the head of the Buchams was happy for Josh. He had a different perspective on rtionships. Perhaps being in love and getting married was not as terrifying as it seemed. ¡°Mr. Bucham and Ms. Sox are really well¨Cmatched. When Mr. Donald expressed his wishes, he cast a nce at his children. Hayden drank her wine nonchntly. Mr. Hugh pretended as though he was unaware of his father¡¯s profound nce. Hayden was not close with Josh. She raised her ss, clinked sses with Josh and Jasmine, and conveyed a generic greeting to them. Josh soon headed to another table with Jasmine for a toast. Although the two of them kept toasting to the guests, they did not drink much. Even so, Josh was worried that Jasmine would get drunk. He softly reminded Jasmine many times, saying, ¡°Jas, just do it for show. Don¡¯t drink too much, or you¡¯ll be drunk.¡± ¡°I¡¯m just drinking one sip every time. I won¡¯t get drunk.¡± Jasmine¡¯s eyes swept around before she whispered, ¡°You too don¡¯t drink too much.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I know my limits.¡± Josh held Jasmine¡¯s hand and beamed with pleasure. ¡°Jasmine, we¡¯ll get married tomorrow. We¡¯ll officially be a married couple.¡± As their wedding date was near, they would begin to prepare for their wedding once they got their marriage license. Josh wanted to prepare a grand wedding for Jasmine, so he put a lot of effort into the preparation. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Josh knew that Zachary hired the best international bridal designer to tailor a dress for Serenity. Given that his wedding was drawing near, he could only hire the best local designer to create a dress for Jasmine, which was a shame for him. The best international bridal designer was too busy to ept his request at such short notice. It was unlike Zachary and Serenity¡¯s wedding, which would be taking ce in the fall. They had ample time to prepare as their wedding was several months away. ¡°Are we going to get married tomorrow? I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll be too drunk to wake up tomorrow.¡± Josh replied, ¡°I¡¯ll stay sober¡­ I won¡¯t get drunk so that I can get married to you tomorrow.¡± Chapter 1456 Chapter 1456 Chapter 1456 Jasmine grinned. ¡°It¡¯s okay, as long as I¡¯m sober. I can drive you to City Hall after I kidnap you while you¡¯re half¨Cconscious. Once we receive our marriage license, you¡¯ll be mine and can¡¯t run. away anymore.¡± Josh said, ¡°I won¡¯t run away, I¡¯m willing to be bound to you for life. I¡¯ll be your lifelong support and provide you shelter. All the money I earn will be for you to spend.¡± ¡°Mr. Bucham, you¡¯re proposing a toast but keep exchanging sweet words with each other. You should consider the feelings of bachelors like us.¡± Callum smiled and joked when he heard the sweet talk between Jasmine and Josh. Josh clinked sses with him and responded with a smile, ¡°You¡¯re not far behind.¡± He looked at Camryn, who was sitting quietly beside Callum. Camryn could not see Josh but could feel his gaze. While facing Josh and Jasmine, she felt around to find her ss and raised it to them. ¡°Mr. Bucham, Jasmine, I wish you a long life together.¡± Jasmine smiled and clinked sses with her. ¡°Camryn, thank you. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Camryn beamed. She did not want toe with Callum but was convinced by him. When she came, not only could she feel the strange gazes of many people looking at her, but she could also asionally hear some whispers around. Camryn came here with Callum. Those people who whispered about her punishing her family because justice demanded it even made sarcastic remarks behind her back about why she was so righteous. They said it was because she found a backer and had climbed to the top. Even so, Camryn faced them calmly. She did not think what she did was wrong. Her mom and uncle conspired to kill her dad. Should she not sue them? Did her dad deserve to be killed? Not only did they harm her dad, but her mother also wanted to kill her. Camryn did not feel torn about it at all; perhaps she was deeply hurt by her mom and uncle for the past two decades or so. She did not have any love for them, so when she sued them for killing her dad, she was not swayed by the kinship between them. The lively engagement party endedte at night. Josh arranged for the guests who traveled far to stay at Wiltspoon Hotel and that he would settle all expenses. After Josh and his driver sent the Soxes home, they went upstairs to rest. Only Jasmine stayed to apany him. He said he had too much to drink and was too thirsty, so he wanted some water. As such, Jasmine poured him some warm water. He had one ss after another and did not seem to have the intention to leave. Jasmine dozed off several times and urged him, ¡°Josh, how many more sses of water do your want to drink? It¡¯s past midnight, so you should hurry back to rest. Didn¡¯t you say we¡¯ll go get our marriage license tomorrow? We can only get up early if we turn in early. I¡¯ll see you at the entrance of City Hall at 9:10 am tomorrow. If you¡¯rete, I¡¯ll dy the matter indefinitely.¡± ¡°Jas, we¡¯re engaged now. Everyone in Wiltspoon knows we¡¯re engaged.¡± Josh looked deeply at Jasmine, who understood the meaning behind his gaze. Jasmine helped him fill his ss with water again then put it down hard in front of him. She sat next to him and reached out to twist his ear. ¡°Don¡¯t think about it. Wait until our wedding night.¡± Josh hugged her and said, ¡°Jasmine, Jazzy, Dear, I¡¯ll just hug you to sleep and won¡¯t cross the line. I¡¯m an old man and am not used to having a woman around. Let me practice and get used to it so that I won¡¯t be shy on our wedding night.¡± Jasmine said amusingly, ¡°You¡¯re thest person who would be shy. You talk a lot when normally give Mr. York love advice¨Cyou¡¯re very experienced.¡± you Josh hugged her tightly and then let her go. Since he loved her, he would respect her. She might seem cheeky, but she was very conservative. ¡°I was just teasing you.¡± Josh dotingly and lightly pinched her pretty face. He stood up and said with reluctance, ¡°I¡¯m leaving. You should get some rest soon. Good night.¡± Chapter 1457 Chapter 1457 Chapter 1457 Jasmine walked Josh out. His driver was waiting for him outside. ¡°You don¡¯t need to send me further. Go back to sleep,¡± Josh turned his head and said to Jasmine. ¡°I need to close the gates.¡± Jasmine lightly patted the dog that came over to rub against her. It shook its head and wagged its tail. Soon, it went back to the corner andy down. Josh looked at the dog and chuckled. ¡°Your dog is very obedient and doesn¡¯t bark. Zachary was scared half to death by itst time.¡± Jasmine hummed. ¡°It doesn¡¯t bark sometimes, but it is good at guarding our house. Since we had it, no one dared climb over the wall at night anymore. Thieves used to spoil the surveince camera above my fence and climb over the wall to get in.¡± Her parents were light sleepers and heard the movements outside. As a result, those thieves managed to get in but rushed to escape without even being able to pick the lock on their front door. Since they had the dog, their surveince camera stayed intact. Now, there was no need for Jasmine¡¯s family to be afraid of thieves anymore. Everyone knew her fianc¨¦ was Josh Bucham. The Buchams kept a low but powerful profile in Wiltspoon. Who would dare steal from Jasmine¡¯s family? One could be easily turned upside down by the Buchams in seconds. As reluctant as Josh was, he still got into the car. Jasmine stood at the entrance and watched the driver start the car. Only then did she close the gates and go back inside.. The night was quiet after that. As usual, Serenity went to the hospital to visit her sister the next day. ¡°Seren, I¡¯m fine now, and Mrs. Lane is taking care of me. You don¡¯t need to stay here with me. every day. Do what you need to do,¡± Liberty said when Serenity put down the insted lunch box. She was already thinking about her business at All You Can Eat. After Liberty got injured, two of her employees came to see her in the hospital. She trusted them and gave one of them the keys to the store so that they could open the door for business as usual. She had asked Serenity to go and take a look. There were regrs and returning customers, so the business was alright. Even so, Liberty was still anxious. She could not wait to recover right away and continue to earn money. ????? go back to the storeter. Jasmine has gone to get her marriage license today and isn¡¯t free. Our bookstore hasn¡¯t been open for a while.¡± Now that her sister was recovering well and was being looked after by Mrs. Lane, Serenity was much more at ease. If she did not go back to the store soon, everyone would think that she was going to close down. the bookstore and be a missus at home. Mr. Charles would probably lose his money in the bet with his friends. He won a handfulst time. ¡°Sonny went to the gym?¡± ¡°Yeah, Jim sent him there.¡± Serenity took out her phone and said, ¡°I¡¯ll call Jim and ask him to send Sonny to my store after his ss so I¡¯ll have apanion.¡± Sonny was still young, after all. He would be bored if he stayed in the hospital every day. Liberty hummed. ¡°Jasmine went to get her marriage license today?¡± She asked with a smile, ¡°Her engagement partyst night must be very lively, right?¡± ¡°It was indeed. Many people showed up. Liberty, you have to get better soon. You must attend her wedding. Jasmine also said you must attend and that Sonny will be her flower boy.¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°Of course. I¡¯ll be able to jump and dance by the time her weddinges. ¡°Seren, you have to go and open your store. Hurry up and go. Don¡¯t worry about me.¡± Under the repeated urging of her sister, only then could Serenity leave the hospital and drive to Wiltspoon School. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Meanwhile, at York Corporation¡­ Chapter 1458 Chapter 1458 Chapter 1458 Callum followed behind his big brother like a tail. Zachary could not help but turn his head and ask him, ¡°If you have something to say, say it. Don¡¯t stick to me like glue¨Cit¡¯s not me you should be sticking to.¡± Why was Callum sticking to him instead of Camryn? Callum smiled and said, ¡°Zack, why aren¡¯t you going back to your office yet? I have something to say to you.¡± ¡°You can¡¯t say it here?¡± Callum grinned. Zachary red at him again and figured that what he wanted to say was a personal matter. Ten minutester, Zachary sat at his desk and asked Callum, ¡°Spit it out. What is it?¡± Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡¯m a little embarrassed. I always think I know more about love than you do, but I feel a little flustered now. It feels like I¡¯m pping myself in the face.¡± Zacharyughed and responded, ¡°Aren¡¯t you guys learning from me? One, don¡¯t hide your identity. Two, don¡¯t ask for trouble. No, you¡¯ve asked for trouble. You know she can¡¯t see, and yet you asked her to send you flowers. Aren¡¯t you worried that something will happen to her on the way? ¡°If something happens, you¡¯ll be the one who¡¯s heartbroken.¡± Callum defended himself. ¡°I wasn¡¯t asking for trouble. I know she can move freely in a familiar environment, so I wanted her to be familiar with the route and befortable when shees to find me in the future. I don¡¯t know when I can get the genius doctor to treat her eyes. Before she regains her sight, I should let her get used to things rted to me. ¡°I told Camryn that she¡¯s the wife candidate Nana picked for me. I convinced her to apany me to Josh¡¯s engagement partyst night, but she wasn¡¯t in the flower store when I went to find her just now. She has moved into the flower store, but her phone was off when I called her. ¡°I keep feeling that she¡¯s avoiding me. It was time toe to work and I didn¡¯t have enough time, so I could onlye to the office first and ask you for some advice. Zack, how do you coax. Serenity when a conflict happens?¡± Zachary¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Your sister¨Cinw and I have a good rtionship.¡± ¡°I know you do now, but wasn¡¯t there a time when things were a bit tense between you? Nana had to live with you to mediate the situation.¡± Zachary wanted to send his cousin, who exposed his past, out of his office. ¡°Ms. Newman is definitely avoiding you. It¡¯s not that there¡¯s a conflict between you, but she can¡¯t ept you. The problen: is different, so it can¡¯t be solved the same way. None of us can help you. with this, so you have to solve it yourself. After all, your pursuit has just begun.¡± Callum pursed his lips: ¡°I thought she had some feelings for me. I helped her and also took care of her business. She¡¯s very happy with me, and she also trusts me. I was the first person she told when she got the recorder. ¡°Who knew, after I told her everything, I can¡¯t see her anymore. I should¡¯ve learned from how you lied to Serenity in the past and lie to her for a while first.¡± Zachary was speechless. ¡°Zack, what should I do?¡± Callum asked, feeling restless. It turned out that wanting toplete the task given to him by his nana and marrying a woman was so troublesome. Callum had always thought that as long as he wanted to marry a woman, no matter who it was, the other party would marry him in a heartbeat. He only realized when Camryn avoided him that she did not want to marry him. It must be because he was not handsome enough No, it was because she could not see how handsome he was. ¡°There¡¯s nothing you can do about it.¡± ¡°Zack!¡± Zachary said with a long face, ¡°All of you say that I¡¯m the one who knows the least about love. What¡¯s the use of asking me? Go and ask Josh when he¡¯s back from his break, or ask your sister¨Cin-w. Seren is a woman, so she should understand how a woman thinks. She¡¯s also the closest with Ms. Newman.¡± He was not familiar with Camryn at all, so much so that he did not remember what she looked like. After all, he only needed to remember what Serenity looked like. Chapter 1459 Chapter 1459 Chapter 1459 ¡°Zack.¡± Callum ttered Zachary, ¡°Zack, you¡¯re the smartest among us brothers. You didn¡¯t know about. love back then, but you and Serenity have been married for half a year now. Your rtionship hast been good, and you have more or less umted some experience. ¡°Zack, you¡¯re happy now, so you should help your brothers cease their happiness too. ¡°Zack, tell me what I should do now. What should I do when Camryn doesn¡¯t want to see me and avoids me?¡± Zachary responded snappily, ¡°As long as you¡¯re thick¨Cskinned enough, you can do whatever you want. You can¡¯t replicate what happened between me and Seren.¡± He and Serenity were mutually attracted, mutually understanding, and mutually trusting. ¡°Thick¨Cskinned?¡± Zachary continued, ¡°If you really want me to teach you a few tricks, I¡¯ll tell you the truth. Pursuing al woman requires you to be thick¨Cskinned. No matter how the woman rejects you, you have to persist. Don¡¯t retreat and ignore her just because she ignores you. If you do that, she¡¯ll only be someone else¡¯s wife.¡± Callum asked after some thought, ¡°Is that all?¡± ¡°Understand the deeper meaning of it before you act. Ms. Newman hasn¡¯tpletely regained her sight, so she somewhat feels inferior about it. Apart from pursuing her, you have to also make her believe that you won¡¯t mind her being blind. ¡°At the same time, you should keep asking Remy about the genius doctor¡¯s whereabouts and try to get the doctor to treat Ms. Newman¡¯s eyes. I heard from Remy that Dr. Carden is pregnant and won¡¯t be on call in the short term. ¡°Ms. Camryn might not be able to see the legendary doctor. Usually, Dr. Carden is the one seeing patients. She¡¯s excellent in medicine and poison. As long as she¡¯s willing to see Ms. Camryn, her eyes will have hope of recovering.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Callum noted, ¡°She said that her blindness was drug¨Cinduced.¡± ¡°Then she¡¯ll have to wait for Dr. Carden. To put it bluntly, being drug¨Cinduced meant that she was poisoned. Dr. Carden is excellent in medicine and poison, so she¡¯ll be able to heal Ms. Camryn¡¯s eyes. In the few months of waiting, you should develop a good rtionship with her and ovee the difficulties between you. ¡°I can help you with other things, but I can¡¯t help you with rtionships. In fact, no one can help you, and you have to rely on yourself. In short, sincerity goes both ways.¡± Zachary began to shoo his brother after he finished. ¡°Go back to your office and don¡¯t dy my work. I have to hurry up and finish all my work for the next two weeks. I n to take your sister-in-w to travel to Annenburg when Liberty is discharged from the hospital.¡± He had promised Serenity. Hence, he would definitely do it. ¡°I envy you, Zack.¡± Callum stood up and said, ¡°Zack, you should take it easy and don¡¯t work too hard. You might not feel tired, but we¡¯ll be exhausted.¡± His brother was efficient at work, but his subordinates might not be able to keep up. They would need to work overtime if they could not keep up, and that would be tiring. The most fearful thing about working at York Corporation was Mr. York going crazy all of a sudden and raising his already high work efficiency. Whenever that happened, everyone would be worn out and feel uneasy. This was because Mr. York must have had a conflict with Mrs. York to be so engrossed in work. ¡°When have I note and left work at normal hours ever since I had your sister¨Cinw?¡± Zachary and Serenity¡¯s rtionship became more stable after they married. He rarely worked till.te at night anymore. Callum witnessed his brother¡¯s disy of love again. Aftering out of the CEO¡¯s office, Callum returned to his own. He handled some important. work before slipping away. He wanted to secretly make a trip to Spring Blossoms. Chapter 1460 Chapter 1460 Chapter 1460 Camryn would not abandon her flower shop. She would always be there. It was working hours at the moment. Camryn would think that Callum was busy working in the office and would not go to her shop, so she could show up. Callum could then catch her red- handed. Callum had not been avoided like this before. In fact, Camryn had always been in the shop. When Callum went there in the morning, she asked. her two assistants to lie to him while she hid in the bathroom. Her phone was turned off because she changed a new phone and number. As such, Callum¡¯s call did not go through. After apanying Callum to attend Josh¡¯s engagement partyst night, Camryn thought about it all night. She did not know why Old Mrs. York picked her. Did Old Mrs. York not mind that she was blind? Or did Old Mrs. York already know she was someone who yed dumb? However, even her little aunt did not know she had long arranged for someone to enter Newman Enterprise and meddle in their business. Old Mrs. York could not have known. Camryn felt that she was not suitable for Callum. While she had not fallen in love with him, she would withdraw herself and leave. She did not want to have any more interactions with him. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Therefore, she changed her phone and contact number. Her new number was only given to Dalton. Dalton Mitchell was now the deputy managing director of Newman Enterprise. He was second only to Mr. Newman and was deeply trusted and relied upon. How Camryn and Dalton met was another story. In any case, Dalton would not betray Camryn. At this moment, Camryn and a strange man were the only ones in Spring Blossoms. The strange. man was Dalton. Despite that, Dalton had disguised himself, so Mr. Newman would not be able to recognize him even if he was present. ¡°Dal, you shouldn¡¯te over. You¡¯ll be exposed if someone sees you.¡± Camryn held up a teapot and poured a cup of tea for Dalton. Dalton looked at her with his dark eyes and said gently, ¡°Given the situation, I won¡¯t be at ease if I don¡¯t come and see you.¡± ¡°They can¡¯t be aggressive now.¡± Camryn originally had a n too, but she met the Yorks because of Serenity, and things did not develop ording to her n. Luckily, the final result was good. It was several times better than the oue she would have gotten from Implementing her n. Her n was only to get back everything that belonged to her and to seek justice for her dad. Camryn¡¯s dad was treated as the sessor because he was loved by his parents, and harmed by his brother as a result. As for Camryn¡¯s mom, she wanted to be with Camryn¡¯s uncle and did not. hesitate to kill her then¨Chusband, leaving Camryn fatherless at the age of two. Camryn understood that her dad was mainly killed for them to gain benefits. If it was only a matter of feelings, Camryn¡¯s mom could have filed for divorce and married the now Mr. Newman instead of killing her husband. What they wanted was all the Newmans¡® family fortune. Hence, they killed Camryn¡¯s dad. After Camryn¡¯s dad died, her grandparents soon passed away one after another. Newman Enterprise ended up with the new Mr. Newman and Mrs. Newman. Camryn admitted that Newman Enterprise prospered and had assets of over a billion dors after it fell into her uncle¡¯s hands. That said, her uncle stepped on her dad¡¯s corpse to rise to the top. This was something she could not tolerate and ept. As such, she arranged for Dalton to enter Newman Enterprise and used him to understand the company¡¯s business. She wanted toy things out bit by bit to reim the enterprise. Camryn nned to let Mr. and Mrs. Newman do the work for her. Chapter 1461 Chapter 1461 Chapter 1461 Now, 99% of the unmentionable forces of Camryn¡¯s mom had been cut off. The remaining small fries could not escape in time and get anywhere. This oue was due to Camryn¡¯s acquaintance with Serenity and the Yorks. Camryn¡¯s n did not include Callum. His appearance caught her off guard. She did not want to be a burden to him, so before she fell deeper, she wanted to cut off his thoughts first and return some peacefulness to each other. Callum was the second son of the Yorks. He should find a more excellent and healthydy as a wife. He should not be matched with a blind person like Camryn. Dalton observed Camryn for a moment and asked gently, ¡°Camryn, is something on your mind?¡± ¡°No.¡± Camryn denied it right away. Dalton smiled and said, ¡°We¡¯ve known each other for over a decade, and you saved my life, so no one knows you better than I do. Tell me if you have something on your mind. You said we¡¯re like siblings. ¡°As long as you tell me, I¡¯ll help you if I can, and I¡¯ll find ways to help you if I can¡¯t.¡± Camryn still denied it after a moment of silence. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I just feel that I owe Serenity a great favor. The oue this time was only possible because we borrowed their power.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not like we borrowed their power. Mr. and Mrs. Newman simply did something that caused widespread indignation and discontent, so God arranged for people who are much more powerful than us to punish them. Camryn, are you unhappy because you¡¯re not satisfied with the oue? ¡°You don¡¯t need to feel burdened. You and Mrs. York are acquainted, after all. That was purely idental, and she¡¯s kind and likes to stand up to injustice. We didn¡¯t use her, and your acquaintance with her wasn¡¯t nned.¡± Camryn could not possibly scheme against Serenity. Her encounter with Serenity and acquaintance with the Yorks were purely unexpected. ¡°But if not for me, my mom wouldn¡¯t have hated Serenity, and Liberty wouldn¡¯t have been injured. Luckily, Liberty is fine now. Otherwise, I¡¯d have a guilty conscience forever.¡± Camryn med herself. She had no intention of Involving others in this, and yet she dragged many people into it. ¡°Did they me you?¡± ¡°No.¡± Camryn thought the Hunt sisters are extremely nice people. ¡°Then that¡¯s it. They didn¡¯t me you, so you shouldn¡¯t me yourself and stress yourself out.¡± Camryn did not say anything. ¡°I heard that you and Mr. Callum go to ces together as a pair. Do you like him?¡± When Dalton raised the question, he stared at Camryn without blinking, afraid of missing her expression. ¡°There¡¯s nothing between us. He introduced me to a big order of business, so I invited him to dinner a few times.¡± ¡°Last night was Mr. Bucham¡¯s engagement party, and you attended as Mr. Callum¡¯s partner.¡± Dalton knew he should not ask too much, but he could not help it. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Camryn, let me know if you like Mr. Callum. I¡¯ll help you.¡± He felt his heart ache a little when he said that. Even so, he quickly shook off that feeling. He was given life by Camryn, and she had also always treated him as a brother. Moreover, he had a stable rtionship with his girlfriend at the moment. Dalton could only be Camryn¡¯s brother in this life. He could not have any improper thoughts as that would destroy their friendship and kinship. It would also hurt his girlfriend. ¡°No, I don¡¯t even know what he looks like. How can I like him?¡± Camryn desperately denied it. Dalton knew she was lying. He did not force Camryn to admit that she had feelings for the second son of the Yorks. She would not have denied it in a hurry if she had no feelings for Callum at all. Sometimes, the more anxious one was to deny something, the more it showed that one was guilty. The Yorks were the richest family in Wiltspoon. They were arge and harmonious family, and they had great values. It was said that the males of the Yorks never divorced. Who would not want their daughters to marry into the Yorks? Chapter 1462 Chapter 1462 Chapter 1462 It was not because the Yorks were glorious and wealthy, but because the men in the family were loving. Camryn had a bitter life. If she could be a part of the Yorks and had their backing. Dalton could gradually withdraw from Newman Enterprise as his godbrother. He had fought for and defended the business for Camryn for many years. He had to eventually return everything to her. Even so, he would still worry about her. He could be more at ease with Callum around. That was because Callum would not go after the Newmans¡® family fortune. After all, Camryn was still blind. If the person by her side had other intentions, she would be gravely harmed. ¡°Mr. Callum and I aren¡¯t suitable and are not a good match. I¡¯m a blinddy who¡¯s not worthy of him. He deserves someone better,¡± Camryn said softly. Dalton put down his cup and reached out to poke her forehead. His action was intimate and natural. ¡°Silly girl, you lost your confidence and are dwelling on an insignificant problem again, huh? You¡¯re great. Apart from your poor vision, how are you inferior to others? You¡¯re the best girl in the world. to me, so be confident, little girl. If you really like Mr. Callum, you should face him bravely. ¡°The Yorks have good values, and the men in their family are loyal in rtionships. As long as they¡¯re married, they¡¯ll spend the rest of their lives with their respective partner. Such men are incredibly rare in this materialistic society. Other people would rack their brains to get married into the Yorks. You shouldn¡¯t waste the ticket given to you.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not.¡± Camryn still denied her feelings toward Callum. After she said that, she instinctively turned to look at the flower shop¡¯s entrance. She heard familiar footsteps. Callum had arrived when Dalton poked Camryn¡¯s forehead. He saw the scene clearly from his car. After parking his car, he got out and strode into the shop. Camryn and Dalton stopped chatting and looked at him. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. She could not see Callum¡¯s expression, but he could hers. Callum¡¯s handsome face turned dark. The way he looked at Dalton was as though he wanted to kill him. It was a typical sign of jealousy. ¡°Mr. Callum.¡± Camryn heard Callum¡¯s footsteps and got a whiff of the familiar scent on him when he got closer. She greeted him calmly. Only then did Dalton realize that the man who entered was the second son of the Yorks and the subject of his conversation with Camryn earlier. Dalton sized up Callum. As expected of a grandson raised by Old Mrs. York¨CCallum was handsome, upright, and domineering. Callum also sized up Dalton, a stranger. ¡®What¡¯s his rtionship with Camryn? ¡®Is he her boyfriend? ¡®Impossible! ¡®Nana wouldn¡¯t have arranged for me to meet someone attached.¡® ¡°Camryn, you have a guest. I¡¯ll be leaving first.¡± Dalton deliberately did not introduce himself, nor did he greet Callum. He got up and took his leave from Camryn and left on his own. Camryn also got up as she wanted to send Dalton off. She went around the cashier counter but was blocked by a tall human wall. She looked up. ¡°What are you doing, Mr. Callum?¡± Her voice was indifferent and cold. This displeased Callum. He looked coldly at her and questioned, ¡°Who is he? What¡¯s the rtionship between you? You avoid me but act intimately and flirt with a man. Camryn, what do you take me for?¡± Chapter 1463 Chapter 1463 Chapter 1463 Camryn responded calmly, ¡°Mr. Callum, what¡¯s the rtionship between us then? Who I hang out. with and who I get close to is my freedom. You helped me a lot, Mr. Callum, but you have no right. to control my social rtions, do you? ¡°I take you for a valued guest, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°A valued guest? Just a guest?¡± Callum reached out and grabbed her shoulders. ¡°Camryn, do you dare say that you¡¯re not avoiding me? I told you the truth and that I treat you as my fianc¨¦e. You avoided me after that and stopped answering my calls. ¡°Now, you¡¯re even flirting with another man. Is that on purpose?¡± Camryn was still very calm. She moved Callum¡¯s hands away and retreated to the counter. She felt safer if there was a table between them. She might look calm, but in fact, she was a bit panicky at the moment. Camryn did not know why she was panicking. She just felt that she had done something wrong to Callum. However, they were not a couple, so it was not as if she betrayed him. She could feel Callum¡¯s anger. ¡°Mr. Callum, as I said, who I hang out with and who I get close to is my freedom. Yes, you did tell me that your grandmother chose me as your wife candidate. I¡¯m ttered that Old Mrs. York chose me. ¡°As for you treating me as your fianc¨¦e, that¡¯s your business and doesn¡¯t represent my thoughts. I consider you a normal friend at most, Mr. Callum. I¡¯m also very grateful that you helped me, but I¡¯ve repaid your kindness by treating you to a few meals. ¡°Also, I wasn¡¯t avoiding you; I only changed my phone and my number. If I were, I wouldn¡¯t be here and would¡¯ve closed the shop and left long ago.¡± Callum stared at her. Since Camryn could not see, it was useless for him to re at her. It did not affect her, and she did not even know he was staring at her. Callum added, ¡°You apanied me to the partyst night.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you force me to go, Mr. Callum? You even brought up your sister¨Cinw, I went to show her and Jasmine respect, not to apany you on purpose. Callum¡¯s face darkened. Camryn was determined to make things clear between them and did not want to cross paths with him anymore. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Who was that man Just now?¡± Callum asked. He could ept that Camryn was avoiding him and wanted to draw a clear line with him. After all, it was one¨Csided for him to treat her as a wife. She did not know at all. When he suddenly told her the truth, it was normal for her to avoid him. That said, Callum was jealous to see her being so close to another man. He had considered her his wife, and his wife could not be so close to men other than her rtives. ¡°You don¡¯t know him anyway.¡± ¡°Camryn!¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, you don¡¯t need to shout. That¡¯s my personal matter, so I don¡¯t think I need to tell you.¡± Callum¡¯s face darkened again. He stared at her for some time before he gritted his teeth and asked, ¡°Camryn, do you really think there¡¯s nothing between us?¡± He propped both hands on the cashier counter and leaned over to move his handsome face closer to hers. They were so close that she could feel his warm breath on her face when he spoke. Camryn trembled but quickly straightened her back again and answered calmly, ¡°Mr. Callum, we¡¯re considered friends¨Cnormal friends.¡± Callum ground his teeth and stared deadly at Camryn again. When he saw her eyes, he remembered that she could not see him clearly at the moment as she was blind. It would be a waste of effort for him to re at her. All of a sudden, Callum grabbed her shoulders again with both hands and pulled her toward him. Camryn hit the counter as a result. Before she could even react, he kissed her lips. She was speechless. Camryn only felt her mind go nk. She did not expect Callum to kiss her! Soon enough, Camryn reacted and immediately pushed Callum away. Despite that, he held her head in ce instead of grabbing her shoulders so that she could not get rid of him. Callum was furious. He could not act like a gentleman anymore. Every time he was with Camryn and saw her red lips, he wanted to taste them to see if they were soft and sweet as he had imagined. He tasted them at this moment. Callum initially wanted to kiss Camryn as a punishment. After their lips met, he instinctively wanted more. The more she struggled, the harder he kissed. Chapter 1464 Chapter 1464 Chapter 1464 It was not until Camryn bit Callum so hard that he bled and let go of her. Next, Callum¡¯s face was hot and painful. Camryn pped him fiercely, right on his face. She pped him by intuition. After serving him the p, Camryn fumbled for things on the table. No matter what they were, she grabbed them and smashed them at him. Callum let her smash things at him. It did not hurt anyway. When Camryn took her white cane and hit him recklessly, he quickly stepped back to dodge it. ¡°Camryn¡­¡± ¡°Get out!¡± Now, it was Camryn¡¯s turn to be furious. She was so angry that her face was red, and there were also tears in her eyes. Camryn thought Callum was a decent man who would not bully her. Who knew¡­ Callum forcefully kissed her! He took advantage of her because she could not see. Camryn was infuriated! ¡°Camryn, I¡­¡± Callum knew he had made an impulsive mistake. He wanted to exin but had no way to do so because he had offended her. ¡°Get out! Callum York, get out!¡± When Camryn heard him speak and confirmed where he was, she threw her cane over. Nheless, Callum was agile and caught the carje she hurled at him. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Okay, okay. I¡¯ll go out. Stop throwing things and don¡¯t hurt yourself. I¡¯ll leave¨CI¡¯ll leave right away.¡± Seeing that Camryn was so mad that she was about to go crazy, Callum hurriedly took the cane and left. Camryn could tell from his footsteps that he was walking out. She only sat after she heard him driving away. Afterward, she raised her hand and rubbed her lips hard. ¡°B*stard!¡± she cursed. She then rubbed her eyes to wipe away her tears. ¡®No crying!¡® Camryn had also bitten Callum hard, so his lip was bleeding. She had taken her revenge. Camryn promised herself to ignore Callum from now on. It was his business to have treated her as his wife; she had never treated him as her husband. Who was he to question her? Who was he to treat her like that? Did he think that she would be his just because he kissed her? Camryn took it as a bite from a dog. Callum wanted to drive back to the office. However, he remembered that Josh was on leave, his brother knew nothing, and nobody at thepany could give him any tip. In the end, Callum went to Wiltspoon School to find his sister¨Cinw. Serenity was a woman and was good friends with Camryn. Callum made a mistake, got into trouble, and angered Camryn. His sister¨Cinw would be the most suitable person to talk to at this time. His lip cracked and bled because Camryn bit him hard. It was no longer bleeding, but it felt as if it was swollen. On top of that, Camryn pped him hard in the face. With that, Callum showed up at Serenity¡¯s bookstore with one side of his face red and swollen. Chapter 1465 Chapter 1465 Chapter 1465 Serenity was looking after the bookstore by herself. She looked up when she heard footsteps and was surprised to see Callum. While getting up and walking out from behind the cashier¡¯s desk, she asked, ¡°Callum, what happened to you? Your lip and face are swollen. Did you fight with someone? Who did you fight with? Did you lose? If you can¡¯t win the fight, you should¡¯ve asked me to help you.¡± Callum flushed when Serenity threw a bunch of questions at him. Did he need his sister¨Cinw to help him win a fight? He was much more skilled than she was. ¡°Serenity, you must help me this time.¡± ¡°Of course. How dare someone beat my brother¨Cinw like that? Even if your brother can take it, I can¡¯t. Tell me who beat you up like this. I¡¯ll go and give it to them.¡± Serenity said while dragging a stool over and pushing it behind Callum. ¡°Sit and tell me slowly. Do you want some water? ¡°I haven¡¯t fought with anyone for a long time. I was just thinking about exercising my muscles.¡± Serenity went to pour some water for Callum. When Callum saw his sister¨Cinw¡¯s figure and heard her words of concern, he felt that she was very excited. ¡°Serenity, I didn¡¯t fight with anyone,¡± Callum exined. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. If he lost a fight, he would need to ask his brothers for help. Although his sister¨Cinw knew some moves, they were fancy but useless against men. Serenity returned to Callum with a cup of warm water. She handed the cup of water to him and pulled a stool over to sit in front of him. Afterward, she looked at him with her beautiful eyes and asked with concern, ¡°Then tell me what happened. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll help you if I can. Not only this time, you can alwayse to me if you¡¯re bullied in the future and need someone to help you out. Your brother has my back, so don¡¯t be afraid.¡± Serenity acted like an elder sister¨Cinw. She looked like she was ready to seek justice for her brother¨Cinw whenever he was bullied. Rowan was the smartest. He clung to her the first time he met her. He had always thought that Zachary was obedient to Serenity, so he quickly clung to her. As long as he was bullied, he wouldin to her. Callum¡¯s face seemed to have be even redder. Faced with his sister¨Cinw¡¯s concerned yet gossipy look, he did not know if he made the right choice bying to her. That said, when Callum recalled Camryn¡¯s reaction and thought about the rtionship between Serenity and Camryn, he felt that he made the right choice. Callum decided to let Serenity learn about the gossip. Even if he did not tell her, his brother would tell her when he found out. After downing half a cup of warm water, he seemed to have mustered his courage. He said honestly, ¡°Serenity, I made a mistake¨Ca huge mistake, and I don¡¯t know what to do. You have to help me. I think only you can help me with this.¡± ¡°You made a mistake? A huge one?¡± Serenity was no longer gossipy and became worried instead. She asked carefully, ¡°You didn¡¯t kill someone or set a fire or rob someone, right?¡± ¡°How could I? The Yorks only do honest business. We would never do things like that.¡± ¡°What mistake did you make then? Did you sign the wrong contract and cost thepany hundreds of millions of dors?¡± Callum shook his head. ¡°Tell me what it is then. I¡¯ll wait for you to tell me before I say anything. The more I guess, the more afraid I am. Callum, I must tell you beforehand that I won¡¯t help you if you have to go to jail. for your mistake.¡± One must have principles when helping someone else and could not help with everything. Callum was speechless. ¡°Serenity, I just kissed Camryn. Do I need to go to jail for that?¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Y¨Cyou¡­ kissed Camryn?¡± She was wondering how far Callum and Camryn had gone in their rtionship. It turned out that they had kissed. Serenity was impressed by how fast they were progressing. Back then, Serenity and Zachary had gotten their marriage license first to be legally married. They only became intimate after a long time. Chapter 1466 Chapter 1466 Chapter 1466 The time Callum and Camryn spent together was not long, so Serenity felt that her brother¨Cinw was rather quick to have developed their rtionship thus far. At least, he knew about rtionships better than Zachary. ¡°Your face is swollen, and your lip also looks swollen as if you got injured. Did you kiss Camryn without her consent? She pped you, didn¡¯t she?¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes shed with interest. She was not stupid. She had experienced it before. Her guess was right on the money once she saw Callum¡¯s appearance¨CCallum forcefully kissed Camryn. His handsome face fell and reddened, but he said nothing. It was an admission by silence. Serenity stood up and walked away. ¡°Serenity, Serenity, you said that you¡¯d help me.¡± Callum said nervously, thinking that Serenity did not want to help him. Serenity said without looking back, ¡°I¡¯m going to get a ss of water. You scared the hell out of me.¡± Callum was speechless. After pouring herself a cup of warm water, she came over while drinking it and sat across Callum again. Then, she looked at him. The Yorks were a good family. Everyone was educated and cultured. That was Serenity¡¯s evaluation of her inws. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Callum was different from Zachary, who was cold and arrogant. Although he was not exactly warm, he was much gentler than Zachary. She did not expect him to force himself on others. ¡°Serenity¡­¡± ¡°Callum, you really didn¡¯t strike me as a pervert.¡± Callum¡¯s ears flushed red. ¡°I¨CI was impulsive. I got angry. Camryn refused to answer my calls and see me, but I saw her very close to another man. I saw that man poking her forehead.¡± Callum knew he was at fault for being indecent toward Camryn. He really just acted on impulse. He was jealous. He was jealous of that stranger. The man was not as handsome as he was, but his mien was not inferior to Callum¡¯s. He must have been a man with a sessful career. ¡°After all you did, I¡¯d be surprised if Camryn answered your calls. Was she very intimate with other men? She doesn¡¯t have a boyfriend, right? How could she be that intimate with a man? Who was the man you saw? Do you know him? Could he be a rtive of hers?¡± Callum was stunned. Could that man be Camryn¡¯s rtive? ¡°I asked Camryn, but she refused to tell me. She even said that it was none of my business who that man was and how he was rted to her. She said that we¡¯re just friends, so I have no right to question her about who she¡¯s close to.¡± Callum added very softly, ¡°I just did something impulsive because I got angry.¡± After all, forcing himself on someone was not something to be proud of. He could not announce it to the whole world. ¡°Is she ignoring your calls and chasing you away because you forced yourself on her?¡± Serenity asked. Callum shook his head. ¡°I told her the truth yesterday. I told her I approached her because she¡¯s the wife Nana had chosen for me. That¡¯s why I treat her as my wife and help her unconditionally.¡± Serenity was speechless. Chapter 1467 Chapter 1467 Chapter 1467 Callum looked at his sister-inw¡¯s speechless face and asked carefully, ¡°Should I not have told her the truth? Should I have kept lying to her? Maybe I shouldn¡¯t have let her know that Nana chose her to be my wife.¡± Before Serenity could respond, he continued, ¡°I just didn¡¯t want to be like Zachary. I was afraid she¡¯d be angrier if I kept the truth from her for a long time till she finally finds out about it, so I was honest with her. I didn¡¯t want to lie to her.¡± After what happened to Zachary, Callum tried his best not to deceive Camryn. Was telling the truth also the wrong move? Serenity paused before sharing her thoughts, ¡°No, but the way you phrased it will make Camryn think that you¡¯re not sincere. You¡¯re just finishing the task assigned by Nana. Put yourself in her shoes. Would you be happy if you were her? ¡°In addition to her sensing that you¡¯re regarding her as a task, and that you don¡¯t really like her, she¡¯ll feel that she¡¯s not worthy of you. It¡¯s true that she¡¯s the eldest daughter of the Newman family, but her status is non-existent in her family. The other nobledies who try to matchmake their sons automatically exclude her from the list of candidates. ¡°Camryn can¡¯t see, so she feels inferior to others. You two haven¡¯t known each other enough, and she can¡¯t see you either. Even if she has a good impression of you, there¡¯s a threshold to it. It¡¯s normal for her to avoid you after you tell her the truth.¡± Callum said bitterly, ¡°But it¡¯s the truth. I had no choice but to approach her because that was the task Nana gave me. Nana has her reasons for choosing Camryn. I haven¡¯t figured out those reasons yet, but I did it because I felt that there was no way out of this anyway. ¡°I don¡¯t have a woman I like, so I¡¯ll just marry whoever Nana tells me to marry.¡± Serenity red at him. ¡°You took advantage of her despite having that mindset?¡± ¡°She said we have nothing to do with each other, so I proved to her that we do have something to do with each other.¡± Callum¡¯s conviction became increasingly oundish under his sister-inw¡¯s re. ¡°You like Camryn. You acted like that because you got jealous. Callum, you first need to figure out why you did what you did. Look into your heart and figure out if you have feelings for Camryn. ¡°Don¡¯t treat her as your task. You have to treat her as your lifelongpanion. You need to be sincere. Camryn already feels unworthy of you because she can¡¯t see, but you¡¯re still treating her as a task. It¡¯s no wonder she ran away.¡± Calium fell silent. ¡°Your attitude was wrong from the very beginning. Go and apologize to Camryn now. From today onward, you have to be sincere and genuine in everything you do for her. Do you think that if you don¡¯t put in your feelings and sincerity, she¡¯ll have to marry you regardless just because she¡¯s the wife Nana picked for you? You¡¯re not universally liked.¡± Callum paused and then uttered, ¡°She doesn¡¯t want to see me. She told me to leave. ¡°Serenity, help put in a good word for me, please? I still don¡¯t know if I love her since I¡¯ve never experienced love before, but yeah, I like her more each day. I promise that in the future, I won¡¯t treat her like I did today. I¡¯ll get her consent first.¡± ¡°You made the mistake, so you must deal with it yourself. I can¡¯t help you with this.¡± Serenity refused immediately. Callum said, ¡°Serenity, you said that you¡¯d help me as long as it was something you could do. Just help put in a word for me. It¡¯s just paying lip service. Are you unwilling to do that much?¡± ¡°If you lost a brawl with someone, I¡¯d be more than happy to round up some guys and help you fight, but I won¡¯t help you in this situation. Go to Camryn yourself to make amends and apologize. Show her your sincerity. ¡°Callum, whether it¡¯s a man pursuing a woman or a woman pursuing a man, I think it¡¯s all down to sincerity.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Callum fell silent again. His sister-inw¡¯s words were simr to Zachary¡¯s. Zachary also said it was all about sincerity. After a long time, he asked, ¡°What if she doesn¡¯t want to see me?¡± ¡°Will you not see her if she doesn¡¯t want to see you?¡± ¡°Of course not. I still have to marry her. How can I not go to see her?¡± Chapter 1468 Chapter 1468 Chapter 1468 Serenity said, ¡°Exactly. Bring out your shamelessness and go to Spring Blossoms now to apologize properly. Don¡¯t say stuff like you¡¯re only pursuing Camryn because she¡¯s the wife that Nana chose for you. Just pursue her and let her feel your true feelings for her. ¡°She was willing to apany you to Jasmine¡¯s engagement party, which means she has feelings for you. As long as she feels that you¡¯re treating her sincerely instead of just a task to bepleted, she¡¯ll be able to ept you openly.¡± Callum thought about it and nodded. ¡°I understand what you mean.¡± ¡°Camryn can¡¯t see, so she¡¯s very sensitive. You have to be careful and considerate. Don¡¯t be disdainful of her.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t disdain her. I never have.¡± Serenity hummed. Callum did not disdain Camryn for being blind. He just adopted the wrong mindset because he was obeying his nana¡¯s arrangement. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°I¡¯ll go to Camryn now to apologize. If she doesn¡¯t want to see me, I¡¯ll loiter in her store until she forgives me.¡± Callum got up to leave. Serenity asked, ¡°Do you want some ice for your face?¡± Callum touched his swollen face and said, ¡°Forget it, I don¡¯t know how long it¡¯ll take for the swelling to go down. I¡¯ll just go like this. Camryn can¡¯t see my face anyway, so she won¡¯t feel sorry for me.¡± He put down the ss of water. ¡°Thanks, Serenity. I¡¯ll go to Spring Blossoms now. Can you help me apply for leave from Zachary? I¡¯m afraid he¡¯ll scold me if I ask for leave by myself.¡± Serenity was willing to help him with that. When Zachary and she were developing their rtionship, Zachary often pushed his work to Callum and Josh. It was time for Zachary to repay his debt. ¡°Be more respectful to women in the future!¡± Serenity added. Callum nodded quickly. He made a mistake once. He would not make the same mistake twice. ¡°I¡¯ll be going now.¡± ¡°Go. School¡¯s almost out, so I¡¯ll be busy soon.¡± Serenity shooed Callurn out of the store. Soon, he drove away in his car. Serenity called Zachary and smiled when he answered the phone. ¡°Babe, I want to apply for leave on someone¡¯s behalf.¡± ¡°Did Callum go to you?¡± Zachary guessed correctly at once. ¡°Yeah, he came to me for help. He made a blunder and asked me to help him, but I can¡¯t and don¡¯t want to help him. He should solve it by himself. However, he asked me to ask for leave from you, which is something that I can do. ¡°Arrange for someone else to handle Cailum¡¯s work for now, babe. He wouldn¡¯t be in the mood to go to work for the time being.¡± Zachary muttered something under his breath that Serenity could not catch. She asked, ¡°What are you mumbling about?¡± ¡°Nothing. I can give him a day or two off, but he can¡¯t not return to the office every day.¡± Serenity figured that Callum should be able to get Camryn¡¯s forgiveness in a day¡¯s time, so she hummed and said, ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll tell Callum that you give him two days off.¡± Chapter 1469 Chapter 1469 Chapter 1469 Zachary hummed and said, ¡°Don¡¯t order takeout for lunch. I¡¯ll send food over to your side. Let¡¯s eat together.¡± Serenity was alone in the store, and Zachary could not bear to let his beloved wife eat takeout. He had already ordered food from Wiltspoon Hotel and a bodyguard picked it up. Then, he would bring the food over during lunch break so the couple could have lunch in the bookstore together. ¡°Okay, I won¡¯t order takeout. You get back to work. School is almost out, so I¡¯ll be busy too.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Serenity hung up the phone after speaking. On the other side, Zachary looked at his phone andined, ¡°She didn¡¯t even give me the chance to say bye.¡± Serenity began to work while Zachary finished his work and left the office. The bodyguard just came back from getting the insted lunch boxes from the hotel. He rushed out to receive Zachary when he saw thettere downstairs. A few minutester, Zachary¡¯s car drove out of York Corporation. He left ten minutes before lunch break, so there was no traffic on the road yet. He arrived at the bookstore soon after. There were still students buying stuff in Serenity¡¯s bookstore. Some students saw Serenity alone and asked, ¡°Serenity, I haven¡¯t seen Jasmine for a few days. Where is she?¡± The only young bookstore owners in the vicinity were Serenity and Jasmine, so most of the students addressed them affectionately. Serenity and Jasmine were pretty and treated the students well, so the students liked to visit their bookstore when school was out. ¡°Jasmine has an important event today and isn¡¯t free, so I¡¯ll be the one looking after the store for the next two to three months. Why? Do you miss Jasmine?¡± Serenity rang them up while joking with the students. After she calcted the total, she gave them a discount. ¡°Two to three months is a long time. Doesn¡¯t that mean we¡¯ll have to wait until next semester to see Jasmine? Of course we miss her. We missed you too when the store was closed these few days. Serenity, we miss you so much. You have to give us a bargain.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°I thought you guys really missed me, but you were just trying to get a discount. Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t overcharge you. There are so many stores here, so you canpare the prices. I¡¯ll never rip you off.¡± It was April now. Josh took two months off after Jasmine and he got married, and by the time Jasmine came back, it would be almost summer vacation. Zachary walked in with the insted lunch boxes. Although the students were aware that this man, who was so serious he was even scarier than the dean, was Serenity¡¯s husband, they still feared him when they saw him. They were too scared to joke with Serenity again. After Serenity helped to bag their purchases, they hurriedly took the bags and slipped away. However, they could not help but secretly nce at Zachary as they left. Serenity¡¯s husband was really good looking. It was just that his expression was too grim and scary. ¡°Do you need help?¡± Zachary asked after he left the insted lunch boxes in the kitchen. He looked around the store. There were only a few students and parents remaining inside. Serenityughed. ¡°Your help will only scare away my few customers. I¡¯ll pass. Why did youe over so early?¡± ¡°I left early.¡± ¡°It¡¯s great being your own boss. No one says a word when you leave work early.¡± Zachary smiled. Ten minutester, the customers finished buying the stationery they wanted and left. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say Sonny would be sent here?¡± Zachary asked. ¡°Sonny wanted to be with Liberty, so Jim had no choice but to send him back to the hospital again.¡± After almost getting kidnapped again, Sonny was clingier to his mother. Zachary did not say anything else. He went back to the kitchen, transferred the packed dishes to tes, and brought them out. Chapter 1470 Chapter 1470 Chapter 1470 Serenity wiped the small dining table clean. Her heart warmed when she looked at the dishes. No matter the time, he always prepared her favorites. ¡°What did Callum say to you? What trouble did he get into?¡± Zachary asked curiously as he filled his beloved wife¡¯s te with food. ¡°He misunderstood Camryn and did something out of line, so he wanted me to help him apologize. I told him that he had to bear the consequences of his own actions.¡± Serenity did not go into detail because she felt that it was Callum and Camryn¡¯s private matter. Her brother-inw told her about it because he trusted her, so she could not tell anyone else about it. She did not tell Zachary lest Camryn felt embarrassed to see him in the future. Even though she did not go into detail, Zachary was a man who had also forced a kiss on Serenity before, so he quickly guessed what happened. He wisely did not continue to inquire. While the couple had lunch, Duncan went to the hospital after work. He stood outside the door of Liberty¡¯s ward for a long time but did not go in. Zachary¡¯s bodyguard asked, ¡°Are you going in, Mr. Lewis?¡± Duncan quickly said, ¡°Never mind. I just came to take a look. Is Liberty better?¡± The bodyguard replied, ¡°Ms. Hunt is recovering well and can get out of bed to walk around now. She¡¯s looking forward to being discharged. Sonny and she are eating inside now.¡± Liberty and Sonny¡¯s three meals were sent over by Sam daily. They were all prepared ording to the nutritionist¡¯s recipes, which were conducive to Liberty¡¯s recovery. Audrey also sent tonic soup from time to time. Olivia tried sending soup too, but she returned with an untouched bowl every time. The Brown family did not show themselves today. ¡°Oh, that¡¯s good. That¡¯s good. Keep watch and don¡¯t let strangers in,¡± Duncan instructed before turning away. The bodyguard was confused. Duncan came all the way but did not go into the ward and did not let Liberty know that he had been here. Duncan met his mother when he was rounding the corner. ¡°Duncan,¡± Mrs. Lewis saw him first and called out. Duncan looked at his mother. ¡°Mom, what are you doing here?¡± ¡°If you can be here, why can¡¯t I? A friend of mine was also hospitalized, so I came to see her. Are you here to see Liberty?¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s words were filled with displeasure. She already said that she would not ept Liberty as her daughter-inw, but her son kept running to Liberty. Duncan hummed and asked, ¡°Which friend of yours was hospitalized?¡± ¡°Hannah is sick. Duncan, I told youst time that you and Liberty are not suitable. Stoping to see her. She doesn¡¯t even like you. Why are you showering an uninterested party with affection? Isn¡¯t Lily good enough? Lily and you are the perfect match.¡± Mrs. Lewis could not help but nag her son. Duncan said in a low voice, ¡°Mom, I told you that I¡¯m in charge of my marriage. You¡¯re here to visit Hannah, right? Go on. I¡¯m leaving now.¡± Then, he walked past his mother and left. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Mrs. Lewis did not stop him and turned around to watch his figure saunter away. ¡°It¡¯s not like you can¡¯t get a wife, but you insist on liking a divorced woman. Furthermore, she doesn¡¯t even like you and only thinks of you as herndlord. Why are you still clinging to her?¡± Mrs. Lewis grumbled about her son. Chapter 1471 Chapter 1471 Chapter 1471 Mrs. Lewis thought about it and decided to see Liberty before visiting her friend. With that in mind, she went to Liberty¡¯s ward. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. When the York bodyguards saw Mrs. Lewising, one of them went into the ward to tell Liberty. The bodyguards did not stop Mrs. Lewis when she approached. They helped her knock on the door and opened the door for her. ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lane and another maid were dining in the small lounge. When they saw Mrs. Lewise in, they quickly put down their lunch boxes, stood up, and greeted her respectfully. ¡°Oh, you¡¯re all eating? Don¡¯t mind me and continue eating. I just came to see Liberty.¡± Mrs. Lewis left the house after eating. Mrs. Lane still escorted her into the ward. Liberty finished eating, but Sonny ate slowly. His mother fed him while saying, ¡°Sonny, you can¡¯t eat so slowly in the future. You¡¯ll have to eat by yourself when you go to preschool.¡± ¡°I know, Mom.¡± Seeing Mrs. Lewise in, Liberty passed the bowl to her son to let him eat by himself and was just about to get out of bed. ¡°Sit, Liberty. You¡¯re still injured. Just sit.¡± Mrs. Lewis hurriedly stepped forward to press Liberty down and stop her from getting out of bed. She did not like Liberty as her daughter-inw mainly because she felt that Liberty¡¯s background was not worthy of the Lewis family. Furthermore, Liberty was divorced and a single mother of a three-year-old child. However, she was very moved by how Liberty risked her life to save her son. ¡°I¡¯m much better now, Mrs. Lewis. I¡¯ve recovered enough to be able to move freely. I¡¯ll be fine as long as I don¡¯t touch the wound.¡± The first two days, her wound hurt so much that she could not sleep well. It was much better these days. ¡°Have you eaten, Mrs. Lewis?¡± ¡°I have. I have a friend who was also hospitalized and happened to be on the same floor as you, so I stopped by to see you,¡± Mrs. Lewis exined. Her eyes sized Liberty up before lingering on her face. She said in a tender voice, ¡°You look much better now. When did the doctor say you could leave the hospital?¡± ¡°I can be discharged after another week.¡± Mrs. Lewis hummed. ¡°Duncan came over earlier.¡± Mrs. Lewis probed, ¡°How long did he stay before leaving? I saw him just as he was leaving. He¡¯s so busy with his work¡­¡± Liberty was stunned. ¡°Mr. Lewis came over? I didn¡¯t see him.¡± Mrs. Lewis was stunned in return. ¡°You didn¡¯t see him? Didn¡¯t hee here to visit you?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t see him. Was he here to visit someone else? Maybe the other person¡¯s ward happens to be on this floor too.¡± Liberty added honestly, ¡°Mr. Lewis is very busy, so he doesn¡¯te here often. Are you sure you saw him, Mrs. Lewis?¡± After saying that, she smiled sheepishly and said, ¡°What am I saying? Mr. Lewis is your son. There¡¯s no way you would¡¯ve mistaken someone else for him.¡± Mrs. Lewis believed Liberty when she saw that Liberty did not seem to be lying. She said, ¡°Maybe he also came to visit a friend like I did. I thought he came here to see you. If he had just left, that means he came over before lunch break. He¡¯s a very busy man, and you¡¯re recovering well, so he doesn¡¯t need toe see you every day. It won¡¯t be good for him if work gets dyed. ¡°The business deals he works on are worth a lot of money and can¡¯t be held up.¡± Liberty was not a fool and knew what Mrs. Lewis meant. She said, ¡°Yes, Mr. Lewis¡¯s time is precious. He makes a fortune every minute, but interpersonal rtionships also need to be handled well. I think Mr. Lewis came to the hospital early before lunch break to visit an important client or friend. ¡°Mr. Lewis has nevere to my ward. I haven¡¯t seen him again after that time he visited with Ms. Harmon.¡± Chapter 1472 Chapter 1472 Chapter 1472 Mrs. Lewis saw that there were no freshly delivered flower bouquets or fruit baskets in the ward and completely believed Liberty¡¯s words. She thought, ¡®Did that boy really note to see Liberty? But he admitted that he was here to visit her.¡¯ However, Liberty said that she did not see him. There was only one possibility-her son came but did not enter the ward. That was why Liberty did not see him. In the end, the problemy with her son. ¡°He was already here at the hospital and on the same floor anyway. Why didn¡¯t hee see you?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked, pretending to be ignorant. Liberty smiled and said nothing. Duncan and her paths crossed frequently, but most of the time, it was because Duncan going to Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. her store for breakfast. He helped her a lot, but that was only because she was Zachary¡¯s sister-inw. Mrs. Lewis looked at Sonny, who was eating by himself, and said, ¡°I won¡¯t bother you anymore, Liberty. You should continue feeding Sonny. I have to visit my friend now.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Liberty got out of bed and insisted on seeing Mrs. Lewis out. Mrs. Lewis saw that Liberty could move freely and did not try to stop her anymore. The two walked out of the ward together. ¡°Take care, Mrs. Lewis.¡± Liberty stood at the door and watched Mrs. Lewis leave. Mrs. Lewis quickly walked away. ¡°Did Mr. Lewise by?¡± Liberty asked the bodyguard. He answered honestly, ¡°Yes. He came for about twenty minutes but didn¡¯t go in. He also told us not to tell you. He just stood at the door for twenty minutes before leaving.¡± Liberty hummed. She did not understand why Duncan came without entering her ward. Did he reallye to the hospital to see her? Liberty felt a little uneasy when she thought of Mrs. Lewis¡¯s implications. Mrs. Lewis misunderstood and dropped her a hint because she thought Liberty had a little something with Duncan. Liberty returned to the room and saw that her son had finished eating. She wanted to clean up the dishes, but Mrs. Lane hurried in to clean up. Liberty lowered her son to the ground for him to walk around and sat back on the bed. She took out her phone from the drawer of the bedside table and sent a message to her sister. [Seren, are you on your lunch break?] Serenity replied, [I¡¯m watching the store so I can¡¯t take a break. Have you and Sonny eaten?] [Sonny just finished eating. He¡¯s a slow eater.] [It¡¯s fine if children eat slowly. Sonny is already very smart to be able to eat by himself. I¡¯ve seen many three- and four-year-olds who still need their parents to feed them.] Serenity felt that her nephew was exceptional. [Seren, I have something to tell you. Mr. Lewis came over earlier but didn¡¯t enter the ward. Your bodyguard said that he stood in front of my ward for twenty minutes before leaving, and he happened to meet his mother when he left. [Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯te to see me. A friend of hers was hospitalized and happened to be staying on the same floor, so she stopped by to visit me. However, she was actually dropping me a hint. Why do I get the feeling that she thinks I¡¯m pining for her son?] Liberty confided in her sister, [I¡¯ve never thought of Mr. Lewis in that way. He only helped me because of Zachary, but Mrs. Lewis thinks there¡¯s something between us and hinted something at me. She said that Mr. Lewis is very busy and time is precious to him, and that he earns a lot of money every minute.] Chapter 1473 Chapter 1473 Chapter 1473 Serenity looked at the message her sister sent and was silent for a moment before replying, [ Liberty, have you ever thought that Zachary isn¡¯t the reason Mr. Lewis is good to you?] Liberty asked, [What other reasons would he have? He only helped me because of Zachary. When I joined hispany, he hired me because of Zachary. I heard him call Zachary.] [I originally wanted to wait until you recovered and got discharged from the hospital before talking to you about this, but I feel wronged on your behalf at the insinuations that Mrs. Lewis threw at you.] Serenity sent the message and called Liberty. Liberty swiftly answered the phone. ¡°Tell me, Seren. What is it that I don¡¯t know? Why did Mrs. Lewis say that?¡± ¡°Liberty, you were unconscious for one night when you were injured. It was Duncan who watched over you all night outside the ICU. He was also the one who saw you in tears and called the doctor. He didn¡¯t sleep at all that night. You were still weak when you woke up, so you didn¡¯t notice it.¡± Liberty paused. ¡°He¡­ He watched over me all night? He¡­¡± ¡°Duncan likes you. He realized his feelings when he saw you injured. In the past, he always said that he was just fond of Sonny and had no other thoughts about you. He only realized that he liked you when you were injured.¡± 1 Liberty was so shocked that she almost dropped her phone. ¡°Seren¡­ Don¡¯t scare me. H-How is that possible? Mrs. Lewis has chosen a good wife for Mr. Lewis. Ms. Harmon is a great girl who¡¯s a good match for him. I saw them getting along quite well.¡± Duncan liked her? Liberty could not believe it. When she met Duncan, she was a 200-pound fat woman who was ugly as hell. She crashed into his car and paid him a sum of money for the repairs. Although Duncan¡¯s face was scarred, he was a CEO with a worth of tens of billions. He would be able to restore his handsome face as long as he was willing to get his scar removed. He was a little old, but he was handsome and rich. There should be many women who wanted to marry him. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. How could he possibly like her? Although she lost weight now, she was a divorced woman. It was not to say that a divorced woman could not find love again, but she felt that men of affluent families had much better choices. There was no need to choose a divorced woman like her. Furthermore, she had a three- year- old son. ¡°I¡¯m telling you the truth, Liberty. Duncan likes you.¡± Liberty was speechless. ¡°Do you have any feelings for him?¡± Now that the cat was out of the bag, Serenity asked her sister how she felt about Duncan. Liberty replied without thinking, ¡°Seren, I only think of Mr. Lewis as a friend. There¡¯s nothing going on between us, and I¡¯ve never thought of him that way before. I also said that I don¡¯t want to remarry. I just want to run my breakfast diner well. My dream is to have my ownrge hotel. ¡°I¡¯ll raise Sonny till he¡¯s old enough and let him take over the business. After he marries, I¡¯ll lend a hand and take care of my grandchildren if he and his wife need help. If they don¡¯t, I¡¯ll travel around the world without disturbing their lives.¡± Liberty suffered under the hands of her mother-inw before. In the future, she would never be a mother-inw who interfered with her son and daughter-inw¡¯s affairs. She wanted to be a mother-inw who her daughter-inw liked, not a nasty one. ¡°Duncan really likes you, Liberty. Are you really not going to think about it? He looks a little rough, but he¡¯s very honest and sincere. He¡¯s much better than Hank. You¡¯re still young¡­¡± Chapter 1474 Chapter 1474 Chapter 1474 Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Seren!¡± Liberty said seriously, ¡°I¡¯ve never had such thoughts. I really don¡¯t have any interest in Mr. Lewis, and Mrs. Lewis has already chosen a wife for him. Ms. Harmon is a very gooddy. ¡°Even if I want to remarry, I won¡¯t marry Mr. Lewis. We¡¯re worlds apart. Mrs. Lewis will never choose me to be her daughter-inw. If I get together with Mr. Lewis, I¡¯ll still have to endure my mother-inw making things hard for me again. ¡°Seren, I finally managed to jump out of the Brown family. You can¡¯t expect me to jump into the Lewis family now, right? ¡°My former mother-inw was a horrible person, but she doesn¡¯t hurt others. Thedies from affluent families are not that simple. Do you think everyone is like your mother-inw? It¡¯s hard enough being the missus of a wealthy family. There¡¯s such arge gap between Mr. Lewis and I, and Mrs. Lewis doesn¡¯t like me either. Who knows what she¡¯ll do to me if I be her daughter-in -Jaw?¡± Liberty¡¯s head was crystal clear. She did not becent and smug just because an important CEO liked her. She did not try to rush into a rtionship with him. She knew very well that Duncan and she were not suitable, and she did not want to suffer at the hands of her mother-inw again. Now, she was raising her son and running her own breakfast diner. She no longer had to serve her family. Liberty felt that was good enough. It was good to be single. ¡°Liberty, I think Duncan will also be very persistent when ites to a rtionship. Now that he knows how he feels, he¡¯ll take action and pursue you¡­¡± Liberty was silent for a moment before asking, ¡°Seren, do you think I should move my store elsewhere? I won¡¯t rent a store that belongs to Mr. Lewis. I¡¯ll stay far away from him and won¡¯t ept him. He¡¯ll give up eventually if he sees that he¡¯s getting nowhere.¡± Duncan was arge CEO. He would give up if he was rejected. ¡°Liberty, he and Zachary are close friends and they meet often. And Zachary is your brother-inw. It¡¯s impossible for you two to not meet.¡± Liberty paused, and said, ¡°You¡¯re right I¡¯ll just reject him. If hees to my store for breakfast in the future, I¡¯ll ask my worker to attend to him. I won¡¯t talk to him.¡± Since escape was not an option, she had to face it head-on. Liberty felt that as long as she acted cold and ignored Duncan, he would not be able to stand it and give up on her voluntarily. Compared to her, she believed that Duncan would soon understand that Lily was more suitable for him. ¡°Seren, why didn¡¯t you tell me if you found out about Mr. Lewis¡¯s feelings long ago?¡± Libertyined about her sister hiding the truth. Serenity said apologetically, ¡°You¡¯re still recovering, and Zachary persuaded Mr. Lewis not to confess to you so soon so as not to scare you, so I hid it from you.¡± * If not for Serenity feeling wronged on Liberty¡¯s behalf by Mrs. Lewis¡¯s insinuations, she would have waited until her sister was discharged from the hospital before talking to her about it. However, it was a talk they had to have sooner orter. It was better to talk about it now. 1 ¡°Don¡¯t hide anything from me again in the future. We¡¯re sisters who¡¯ve relied on each other for so many years. What is there that you can¡¯t tell me? No matter what it is, I can face it.¡± Liberty was shocked and never dreamed that Duncan would have feelings for her. However, she did not like how her sister kept her in the dark. In this world, her sister and she were the closest. There was nothing they could not say to each other. Liberty remembered how Grandma May said that she could introduce a better man to Liberty and help her live a life better and happier than when she was with Hank. That was the best revenge against Hank. She thought, ¡®If Mr. Lewis doesn¡¯t give up, I¡¯ll ask Grandma May for help.¡¯ Chapter 1475 Chapter 1475 Chapter 1475 ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Liberty.¡± Serenity knew that she was wrong to keep her sister in the dark. Liberty was right. They were sisters who relied on each other for many years. She could not hide the truth from her sister, even if she thought that it was for her sister¡¯s own good. Many people thought their actions were for the good of someone else¡¯s sake, but was that really true? Had they ever asked what the other party thought? ¡°I know you¡¯re worried about me, so I don¡¯t me you. Just don¡¯t hide anything from me again. You don¡¯t have to worry about this for me. I can handle it.¡± ¡°I believe in you, Liberty. You got this!¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Liberty added, ¡°Go back to work. I want to let Sonny take a nap.¡± ¡°I¡¯lle see you after the students finish ss in the afternoon.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± After the call, Liberty looked at her son. Sonny was also looking at her. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Naptime, Sonny.¡± Liberty ced her phone back in the drawer and motioned for her son to lean forward. She wanted to pick her son up, but he refused. ¡°I can climb up by myself, Mom. Aunt Ser said that you¡¯re still injured and can¡¯t carry me.¡± Sonny climbed into the bed by himself. Liberty reached out and touched her son¡¯s head lovingly. The best decision she made during the divorce was winning custody of Sonny. Liberty did not need to get IV therapy in the afternoon. During lunch breaks, Sonny would rest in his mother¡¯s bed. The little guy had a routine. Hey beside his mother and touched her face with one hand. Then, he hugged her arm and slept peacefully. Liberty looked at her son tenderly. However, her mind was distracted by Duncan having feelings for her. She did not understand why Duncan liked her. Liberty did not doubt her sister. If Duncan did not like her, he would not keep watch at the entrance of the ICU for the entire night. She reached out and gently touched her son¡¯s face. She never considered remarrying because she was worried that her second marriage would be unhappy too. She was also worried that Sonny would be bullied and abused. She had seen a lot of news of children getting hurt after a parent remarried and had another child. Some of them were even abused to death by their stepfather or stepmother. Liberty was afraid. She would rather raise her son by herself. Now, she had an ie, prospects for the future, and the support of her sister and brother-in-w. She had no problem raising Sonny alone. Sonny did notck love either. Everyone loved him. Even though Hank was not very responsible as a father, he was still able to give Sonny fatherly love. Liberty believed that Sonny would grow up healthily surrounded by everyone¡¯s love. ¡°Mom will always love you, Sonny.¡± Liberty pressed a kiss on her son¡¯s tender face. After sleeping for less than an hour, she woke up just as Mrs. Lane entered. ¡°Ms. Hunt, your grandparents and one of your cousins want to see you.¡± Liberty was surprised. Chapter 1476 Chapter 1476 Chapter 1476 She had not heard from her family since resolving the problem of the house left behind by her parents. When they talked about their hometown, it was just her sister talking about the progress of her vegetable farms. Serenity predicted that their vegetable farms would be ready for nting in early June. She nned to start nting a batch of spinach, cabbages, lettuce, eggnts, pepper, and so on. Serenity knew more about what vegetables to grow than Elisa and Jasmine, so she decided on what vegetables to nt and how to manage them. Jasmine and Elisa were responsible for the business side of things and signing orders. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Let them in.¡± Liberty did not want to have any contact with her family, but since they were her elders who came all the way here, she told the bodyguard to let them in. It was Noah who came with their grandparents. The old couple walked in front while Noah followed behind with a bag of fruits. Sonny was still asleep, so Liberty went to the small lounge. When she saw the trio enter, she was silent for a moment before greeting her grandparents. ¡°Liberty.¡± Noah put the bag of fruits on the coffee table and greeted her. Liberty hummed and invited the three of them to have a seat. ¡°How are you, Liberty? Why didn¡¯t you tell us when something like this happened?¡± Old Mr. Hunt asked about Liberty¡¯s injury, looking concerned. Old Mrs. Hunt also wanted to say a few words of concern. Her mouth opened, but in the end, she said nothing and pursed her mouth. She could not get close to the Hunt sisters anymore. They had fought fiercely in the beginning. Although the situation was resolved now, the two elderly did not want to cause trouble anymore and lived quietly in Scott¡¯s house. However, they still could not get close to Liberty and Serenity. They could not pretend as if nothing had happened. In Old Mrs. Hunt¡¯s heart, she always felt that her two granddaughters, especially Serenity, were not filial. Serenity married into the richest family in Wiltspoon and became their missus, but she did not know how to help her cousins from her maiden family. She only cared about enjoying herself. Not only did Serenity not help her cousins, but even her grandmom could not share her blessings. If any other granddaughter of Old Mrs. Hunt married into a wealthy family, she felt that she would be worshiped by others and enjoy boundless glory and splendor. Unfortunately, their original n of letting Harriet take Serenity¡¯s ce fell through. Somehow, Harriet¡¯s face turned into her eldest granddaughter¡¯s instead. Their grandchildren guessed that their n was leaked, causing their ns to fail after Zachary turned the tables. They came to the city now because they were invited by Serenity to deal with the Brown family. In exchange, Serenity would give her grandparents the money that their sons paid for rent as living expenses. Old Mrs. Hunt disliked Serenity¡¯s pettiness, but it was better than nothing. It was better to have an ie of a thousand or so dors a month than nothing at all. The rent money received would be for Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt to spend anyway. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to worry you. Seren and I have always gotten through everything ourselves.¡± Liberty¡¯s words had an underlying meaning. Old Mr. Hunt seemed not to catch it and continued to ask concerned questions before saying, ¡°It was Serenity who asked your grandmom, Noah, and I toe into town to help you.¡± Liberty thought they were here to help her take care of the breakfast diner and refused their help.¡± There¡¯s no need for that. I¡¯ll be discharged from the hospital soon, and I have staff watching the store. I don¡¯t need your help. You¡¯re old now, so you can retire peacefully at home.¡± ¡°We¡¯re not here to help out at your breakfast diner. Your former inws keep pestering you, so Serenity asked us to help keep them away.¡± Old Mr. Hunt exined, ¡°We just arrived today and found the ce the Brown family rented. We stopped them from leaving the house and scolded them. We had a big fight beforeing to see you. Liberty, just focus on recovering. Your grandmom and I will deal with those people. ¡°As long as your grandmom and I lie down in front of their house shouting for their neighbors toe watch the show, and with Noah in charge of taking photos, I guarantee they won¡¯t dare even leave the house, let alonee to pester you.¡± Liberty was speechless. Chapter 1477 Chapter 1477 Chapter 1477 No wonder it was so quiet and peaceful today. She did not hear any noise from her former inw¡¯s family. So it was Serenity who helped her out. She had to admit that it was a good solution. Her grandparents were unreasonable and difficult people. Furthermore, they were already old, so they did not have to do much. They could control the Brown family just by lying in front of their door. ¡°Does Seren know that you¡¯re here?¡± ¡°She knows Serenity arranged for people to rent a nice ce for us,plete with all the daily necessities. Our unit is on the same floor as the Brown family. They have to pass by our door if they want to go out.¡± Liberty could not help butugh. ¡°In that case, I¡¯ll leave it to you, Granddad, Grandmom.¡± She was tired of being pestered by her inws. They kept trying to get her to remarry Hank, but Hank was already married to Jessica. Even though Jessica was arrested, they were not divorced yet. Putting aside how Liberty would never go back to Hank, even if she wanted to, they should still wait until Hank divorced Jessica, right? When she was the daughter-inw of the Brown family, her inws joined forces to use her and instigated fights between Hank and her. They bullied her for not having an ie yet made Hank go Dutch with her. They wanted to force her to go out and earn money to support the family, but they did not want to help take care of Sonny. However, they were willing to raise their daughter¡¯s three children. The monthly living expenses that Hank gave his parents were spent on Chelsea¡¯s family as well. Now, Liberty had walked out of the shadows of divorce and opened a small breakfast diner of her own. She finally had an ie and was hopeful for her future, but her former inws wanted her to return to them. What did they take her for? Did she have to be their daughter-inw just because they wanted her? Then, they could kick her away again when they did not want her anymore. For Sonny¡¯s sake, Liberty did not argue with her former inws. However, it was because of that that led her to be harassed by them all the time. It got worse after Jessica was arrested. Olivia and Chelsea could literallye to the hospital thrice a day, saying things like they hoped she could forgive Hank and remarry him. Old Mr. Hunt said, ¡°We¡¯re old and can¡¯t help you much, but this is one thing that we can still help with. Don¡¯t worry and just focus on recovering. We tried telling you not to marry that Brown boy, but you refused to listen. ¡°You¡¯ll suffer if you don¡¯t listen to your elders.¡± Liberty smiled and said nothing. When Hank and she got married, her grandparents brought her uncles and aunts to their door, but not to send their blessings. They wanted to ask for a bride price of three hundred thousand dors. When Hank did not give them the money, they said they would not let her marry him. It was certainly not out of good intentions. However, she indeed married the wrong person. ¡°Well, I¡¯m relieved to see that you¡¯re fine. We won¡¯t disturb your rest anymore. We¡¯ll go now and keep an eye on that family. We won¡¯t let them have the chance to pester you.¡± Old Mr. Hunt also remembered what they did in the past, but he did not reveal his awkwardness. When he saw that Liberty was unwilling to engage in conversation, he stood up and got ready to leave. ¡°Grandmom and Granddad, take these fruits back for yourselves. I have plenty already.¡± Liberty picked up the bag of fruits that Noah brought as she got up to see them off. She passed the bag to Noah and let him take it. ¡°Noah, Grandmom and Granddad are old now, so keep an extra eye on them. Call us if anything happens.¡± Since the two elderlies were here to help her out, she had to make sure that they did not get angered to death by the Brown family. Noah saw that his grandparents did not refuse to take back the fruits, so he took the bag and responded, ¡°I know. Grandmom and Granddad are good at quarreling. That family won¡¯t win against them.¡±Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Old Mrs. Hunt suddenly spoke up and said smugly, ¡°Exactly. There are not many people back in town who can beat me in a verbal fight.¡± Liberty went back to her room and took some of the supplements and snacks that everyone had given her, filled a big bag to the brim with them, and asked Noah to take it with him. Chapter 1478 Chapter 1478 Chapter 1478 Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Grandmom and Granddad, these supplements are very expensive, but they¡¯re suitable for old people like you to consume. Keep them for yourself and don¡¯t share them with others.¡± Liberty could not eat that much anyway. She did not give her grandparents money, but she could give them supplements. They harmed the sisters too much in the past. Even if they wanted to help her solve her troubles now, she could not forgive them immediately. Her sister must have given them benefits as well to have persuaded them to help her. ¡°Liberty, you¡¯re in the hospital now. You should keep the supplements for yourself.¡± Although Old Mrs. Hunt refused verbally, she let her youngest grandson go up and take therge bag. Liberty sent the three of them out of the ward and instructed Noah to take care of his grandparents. Then, she went back to the ward and called her sister again. Back at Lewis & Co., Duncan had just finished talking to a client about a deal and was about to send the client downstairs when his secretary came up to him. The secretary whispered, ¡°Mr. Lewis, Mrs. Lewis is here.¡± ¡°I got it.¡± Duncan already figured that his mother woulde. He bumped into his mother when he went to see Liberty in the hospital at noon, so he guessed she woulde to talk to him again. It had only been three hours, but his mother came all the way to his office. Duncan personally escorted the client downstairs. He met his mother on the first floor. Mrs. Lewis saw her son escorting his client and did not do anything. She stopped there and waited. Ten minutester, Duncan came back inside, walked up to his mother, and asked, ¡°Don¡¯t you have any ns for the afternoon?¡± ¡°You younglings are the busy ones while your dad and I are left at home fiddling our thumbs. What ns would I have? Your dad went to y golf with his friends. There¡¯s no one to apany me, so I came here to sit with you.¡± ¡°Is Ms. Harmon not free today?¡± ¡°Do you think she¡¯s an idle woman? She has a job too. Besides, how can she apany me all day? She¡¯s a filial girl. As long as you give her a title, she¡¯ll definitely make time for me. She¡¯s not like you, who doesn¡¯te home for days on end and only angers me when you doe home,¡± Mrs. Lewisined as she walked. Duncan said, ¡°Don¡¯t you have three daughters-inw? None of my three sisters-inw go to work, and you have grandchildren too. If you¡¯re bored, you can go take care of your grandchildren.¡± The Lewis family business was taken over by his first two brothers. His third brother also had an important position in the family business. His three sisters-inw stayed at home after marriage to raise their children. Mrs. Lewis red at Duncan and said, ¡°Don¡¯t try to get rid of me. I¡¯m going to keep an eye on you until you and Lily get married.¡± Only then would she be assured. In short, with her around, she would never let her youngest son get together with Liberty. Even if her son med her for this, she did not care. He would understand her in the future. If two people from different social status got married, it would be difficult for both parties. Duncan frowned and said, ¡°Mom, I won¡¯t marry Ms. Harmon!¡± Chapter 1479 Chapter 1479 Chapter 1479 It was only the mother and son when they entered the CEO¡¯s elevator, so Mrs. Lewis spoke impolitely. She snapped, ¡°You don¡¯t have to marry Lily. I¡¯ll find you anotherdy who¡¯s a good match for you. In short, you can only marry a nobledy. You can¡¯t marry Liberty! ¡°I¡¯m serious, Duncan. I¡¯m not joking. Untess hell freezes over, I¡¯ll never agree to you being with Liberty.¡± Duncan did not get angry at his mother¡¯s stubbornness and said, ¡°Mom, did youe here just to say all that to me again? I think there¡¯s no need for us to talk about this. ¡°You don¡¯t have to care about my business or my marriage. If you want me to give up on Liberty, bring Granny back to life. If Granny also doesn¡¯t approve of me being with Liberty, then I¡¯ll give up on her.¡± Mrs. Lewis was so angry that she yelled, ¡°Your granny passed away many years ago. If she could come back from the dead, she would definitely scold your ear off. In fact, your granny might actually rise from her grave if you get together with Liberty.¡± ¡°That¡¯s all the more reason I should be with Liberty. I miss Granny. Granny doted on me the most since I was a child. No matter what I do, Granny will support me as long as I¡¯m happy. She said that the most important thing is for a person to live life with a clear conscience free of regrets.¡± Old Mrs. Lewis did love her youngest grandson, Duncan, the most when she was alive. Mrs. Lewis gave birth to four sons. She had too many sons, so she did not spare as much energy for her youngest son. She did not care for Duncan enough. ¡°You¡¯re just spoiled by your granny!¡± Mrs. Lewis scolded him. ¡°You went to visit Liberty in the hospital today. Why didn¡¯t you dare let her know? ¡°Duncan, you know very well that Liberty doesn¡¯t like you. She only thinks of you as herndlord, as a friend. Her ex-husband is still pestering her too. They¡¯ve known each other for more than a decade and have a son together. Maybe they¡¯ll remarry in order to give their son aplete family.¡± Duncan was silent. He went to see Liberty at noon but did not go in because Liberty was eating. He did not want to bother the mother and son. However, it was also because he felt that Liberty would be suspicious if he visited her too often. Zachary advised him not to confess too soon, saying that he should wait for Liberty¡¯s career to stabilize before courting her. That way, his chances of sess would be higher. Mrs. Lewis was still nagging her son when they returned to Duncan¡¯s office. She tried her best to persuade him to give up on Liberty. After all, the two were not together yet. It was just her son¡¯s unrequited feelings. Mrs. Lewis felt that it would be easy getting his son to give up on Liberty now.Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Duncan did not care about what his mother was saying. He felt that he had made his point very clearly. He busied himself with paperwork as his mother nagged him. Beep, beep- He received a new message from his phone. Duncan picked up his phone and tapped on the message to see it. It was from Josh. [Duncan, let¡¯s have dinner together. Call a driver. We¡¯re all drinking tonight to celebrate the end of my bachelorhood.] Duncan replied to his friend, [Congrattions! Do you want to arrange for anything else besides dinner and drinks? For example, going to a nightclub?] Josh immediately replied, [I have a wife now. There¡¯s no need to go to a nightclub. As for you, you¡¯re still single. It¡¯s not a bad idea for you to hang out there. I¡¯m warning you, don¡¯t try to get me into trouble. I¡¯ll punch you if you let my wife misunderstand me.] Duncanughed. [I was just messing with you. Okay, let¡¯s have dinner together. We won¡¯t go home till we¡¯re drunk. Ugh, out of us three, I¡¯m the only one still single.] Chapter 1480 Chapter 1480 Chapter 1480 [There are perks to being single. Cheer up.] Joshforted his friend. When there was no woman he liked, Duncan also thought that it was good to be single. Now that there was someone he liked, he wanted to be like Josh. He wanted to end his status as a bachelor soon. In the future, he wanted someone to care for him and give him warmth when he came home after work. Liberty would definitely be a good wife! Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Hank did not know how to cherish her, but if Duncan got together with Liberty, he would certainly treasure her. ¡°Who¡¯s sending you messages, Duncan? Is it Zachary? Duncan, Zachary still feels a sense of novelty with Serenity, so he¡¯ll side with his wife and sister-inw. You should keep your distance from him until you marry Lily.¡± Mrs. Lewis was confident that Zachary would stand on his sister-inw¡¯s side. Josh¡¯s fianc¨¦e was Serenity¡¯s best friend. The Sox family was not bad; they were locals of Wiltspoon and owned several buildings and streets of stores for rent. Jasmine was worthy of Josh. Furthermore, Josh and Jasmine got together thanks to Zachary and Serenity Mrs. Lewis felt that Zachary wanted to let his sister-inw marry her youngest son so the three friends would grow even closer. ¡°What are you saying, Mom? Are you saying Zachary is only with Serenity for the novelty? Zachary isn¡¯t a fickle man. Since he fell in love with Serenity, he¡¯ll love her for the rest of his life. The York family also epts Serenity, so you should keep words like that to yourself. It¡¯ll affect the rtionship between our families if Zachary and the York family heard what you said. ¡°I told you-I won¡¯t marry Lily! I don¡¯t love her. I don¡¯t even like her. I don¡¯t want to waste her time. I¡¯ve made it very clear to her.¡± Lily only talked to him about business matters. She never brought up personal affairs with him. She was a smart woman. She would not waste her time on an insoluble problem, and she would not feel ashamed of losing to Liberty. ¡°Josh went to get his marriage formalities done today. He invited us to dinner and drinks tonight to celebrate the end of his bachelorhood.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s expression was displeased at her son¡¯s lecture. ¡°I know Zachary isn¡¯t a fickle man, but there¡¯s been no news about Serenity after so long. There¡¯s a possibility that there¡¯s something wrong with her body that makes it hard for her to get pregnant. If she really can¡¯t have a child, do you think she can maintain her position as the missus of the York family?¡± News about Zachary and Serenity¡¯s argument at the hospital went viral. Although the trending search was taken down quickly, everyone started to have their own opinions. However, they simply kept those thoughts to themselves since it was not a good idea to voice them. ¡°How would you know if Serenity can have a child or not? Zachary said that he¡¯s not in a hurry to have a child. Not even Liberty and Mrs. Stone are worried about Serenity, so why are you? I¡¯ve said this before, Mom. You should keep those thoughts to yourself.¡± Mrs. Lewisughed sarcastically. ¡°That¡¯s because Zachary and Serenity have been married for less than a year. Just you watch. We¡¯ll know which one of them has a problem next year. Zachary looks to be in the pink of health, so there shouldn¡¯t be any problems with him. The problem is Serenity.¡± Everyone in Wiltspoon knew that Mr. York spoiled his wife. The couple was incredibly sweet, but she had no bun in the oven after half a year. It was natural for people to start having thoughts. Duncan said coldly, ¡°You don¡¯t have to deliberately trod on Serenity to step on Liberty. I like Liberty. I have my mind set on her. Whether or not you agree, I like her. I don¡¯t want anyone but her!¡± ¡°Duncan Lewis, are you that eager to be a stepfather? Her son is already three years old!¡± ¡°Yes, I want to be Sonny¡¯s stepdad. I like Sonny. I want him to be my son.¡± ¡°You-!¡± Mrs. Lewis was infuriated by her son. Chapter 1481 Chapter 1481 Chapter 1481 Ring, ring, ring¡­ Duncan¡¯s phone rang. It was Zachary who called. Duncan immediately answered it. ¡°Josh is inviting us to dinner tonight.¡± Duncan beat Zachary to it as he assumed Zachary was going to ask if he was free. The three of them were the closest of friends. Since Josh was no longer a bachelor and invited them to dinner, Duncan would go even if he was busy. ¡°I know, he sent me a message long ago.¡± Zachary held his phone in one hand and a cup of coffee in the other. He called Duncan while he was drinking coffee. ¡°My wife saw through you.¡± ¡°Saw through me?¡± Duncan did not get it at first. He soon understood and responded, ¡°She saw through me? That¡¯s good. I was wondering how I can say it.¡± Initially, Duncan wanted to act on his feelings after realizing them. It was Zachary who persuaded him to hold back. Zachary told Duncan that it was inappropriate to tell Liberty about his feelings at the moment because she was injured and still weak. He asked Duncan to wait first. Considering his mom¡¯s dislike for Liberty and that Liberty had experienced a failed marriage, Duncan was willing to wait for a few years. He could silently protect Liberty by her side. Once she achieved sess and was recognized, he would confess to her. Duncan thought the two of them would have a much better chance of getting together then. Besides, time would reveal a person¡¯s heart. Liberty could definitely feel Duncan silently protecting her and staying by her side. Companionship was the deepest confession. Duncan did not expect Serenity to see through him. He looked at his mom and guessed that she must have gone to see Liberty again. While she might not have made things difficult for Liberty, she would say things with sarcasm. Liberty would always tell her sister everything. Duncan guessed that was how Serenity saw through him. ¡°Okay, I got it.¡± Since Liberty knew what he was thinking, he no longer needed to hold back. Zachary wanted to say something but stopped. He finally sighed and said, ¡°If it doesn¡¯t work out, don¡¯t dwell on it.¡± He was sandwiched at the moment. On one hand, it was his close buddy¨Che hoped his buddy could be happy. On the other was his sister-inw. He loved Serenity, and his love for her extended to her sister. Simrly, he also hoped that his sister-inw could fall in love for the second time and that it would be better than her first. Zachary did not want Liberty and Duncan to be strangers because of feelings. Duncan did not say anything. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary also did not say more either. He took the initiative to end the call. Afterward, he silently finished his cup of coffee. Cupid must be working overtimetely, constantly matching the people around him. There was Callum, Kevin, and Duncan. Their love lives were kicked off almost simultaneously. Only Remy and Elisa were still shy and hiding their feelings. Even so, Zachary and Serenity could take their time and watch the show. Back then, the others watched the show between them for a long time. Chapter 1482 Chapter 1482 Chapter 1482 Zachary went back to work. His wife would pick him up from the office in the afternoon, and they would go and celebrate Josh and Jasmine¡¯s marriage together. Zachary could dive right back into his work, but Duncan could not focus on his. Duncan¡¯s mom asked him right after Zachary ended the call, ¡°Duncan, what did Zachary tell you?¡± ¡°Mom, do I need to tell you the content of my calls? You didn¡¯t even take me seriously when I was a child. Now that I¡¯m in my thirties, you¡¯re here to control me. Don¡¯t you think it¡¯s toote?¡± Mrs. Lewis choked. ¡°Mom, you¡¯ve finished what you wanted to say. I have to get back to work.¡± Duncan wanted his mom to leave. Mrs. Lewis said after a moment of silence, ¡°Since Josh is treating you to dinner tonight, take Lily with you and let her slowly integrate into your circle of friends.¡± ¡°No!¡± Duncan directly refused. Mrs. Lewis asked, ¡°Do you hate Lily that much? What about her that is inferior to Liberty? She¡¯s better than Liberty-be it her background, appearance, or age. She¡¯s also much more capable than Liberty.¡± ¡°Ms. Harmon isn¡¯t better than Liberty; she was just better at her reincarnation this life. If Liberty had the same starting point as Ms. Harmon, she might¡¯ve taken control of a big group on her own long ago. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t ask me why. I don¡¯t know the answer either, but I just like Liberty. There¡¯s no need to ask why and when. I just have to move and look forward.¡± Mrs. Lewis was furious. ¡°Mom, are you going back by yourself, or should I arrange for my secretary to drive you?¡± Mrs. Lewis stood up and said with a tense face, ¡°I¡¯ll go back by myself.¡± ¡°Have a safe trip.¡± Duncan smiled with his eyes squinted despite having pissed off his mom. Mrs. Lewis called Lily after she left Lewis & Co. She said, ¡°Lily, Josh got his marriage license today and invited Duncan and the others to dinner tonight. You should apany him. ¡°That¡¯s Duncan¡¯s circle of friends. You should first blend in with his friends, and then you¡¯ll slowly be able to find your way into his heart.¡± When Lily received Mrs. Lewis¡¯s call, she was in a good mood as she happened to have sealed a deal with a veteran CEO. ¡°Okay, Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯ll go find Duncan at his officeter.¡± Mrs. Lewis was very pleased with Lily¡¯s positivity. She asked, ¡°Have you settled the coboration you¡¯ve been working on for a few days?¡± Lily smiled and answered, ¡°Yes. I informed my secretary to book a flight and send me the contract. After signing the contract with Mr. Ziegel, I don¡¯t need to worry about any changes.¡±Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lewis was also happy for her. I She felt that Lily¡¯s achievements would belong to their family in the future. The greater Lily was, the more she would be able to help Duncan. The husband and wife together could make Lewis & Co. better. ¡°Lily, congrats.¡± Lily thanked Mrs. Lewis with a smile. The two of them chatted for a while before Mrs. Lewis hung up the phone. Her mood was seriously affected after her son pissed her off, but her future daughter-inw made up for it. What Mrs. Lewis did not know was after she ended the call, Lily called Duncan and told him everything. Lily said, ¡°Mrs. Lewis isn¡¯t going to give up. Duncan, I won¡¯t go to the dinner with you, but in case she checks and causes unnecessary trouble, send me a picture of the dinnerter. ¡°I¡¯ll upload it to my social media. Mrs. Lewis will think we¡¯re dining together when she sees it.¡± Duncan responded in a deep voice, ¡°Mr. Harmon, if you do that, it¡¯ll only make my mom even more determined to set us up. You mean well, but I don¡¯t think that¡¯s necessary. I¡¯m also not afraid of my mom talking to me about it. ¡°Apart from my granny, who had some say, even my parents can¡¯t interfere in my marriage.¡± Duncan¡¯s granny had passed away many years ago. Duncan respected his granny very much, but she could note back from the dead to stop her youngest grandson from pursuing Liberty. Nheless, Old Mrs. Lewis and Old Mrs. York were good friends. The two besties had simr temperaments. Old Mrs. York was unconventional when it came to choosing partners for her grandsons. Chapter 1483 Chapter 1483 Chapter 1483 If Old Mrs. Lewis were alive, she would not stop Duncan from pursuing Liberty. In Duncan¡¯s words, his granny only wanted him to be happy. If he truly loved Liberty, his granny would definitely support him to pursue Liberty. ¡°Ms. Harmon, you don¡¯t have fantasies about me still, do you?¡± Lily responded, There¡¯s no such thing. I now know what kind of person you are, Duncan. Since you don¡¯t love me, why should I harbor fantasies about you? You¡¯re not the only outstanding man in this world. ¡°Why should I cling to you when you don¡¯t belong to me? Wouldn¡¯t it be good for me to find someone else? I can also find more than one man. ¡°Alright, then I¡¯ll stop acting too. I¡¯ll have dinner with Mrs. Lewister and make things clear, then I¡¯ll move out of your house and live in Wiltspoon Hotel. We might not end up as a couple, but we can still be friends.¡± Lily was well-intentioned. Even so, Duncan was also reasonable. It would be better for Lily to make things clear to Mrs. Lewis and move out of their house so Mrs. Lewis would stop having ideas about her. It was not that Lily did not like Duncan, but it was the other way around. There were many outstanding young men in Wiltspoon. For all Lily knew, she could meet her true love. If she could not meet one in Wiltspoon, she could go home and pick one slowly. If she could not find a good man, she could still live afortable life on her own. ¡°Duncan, you should go back to work. I¡¯m going to drive.¡± Lily took the initiative to hang up the phone. Serenity did not know these things. In the afternoon, she informed several of her part-timers who were helping her knit crafts toe over to get the materials. School was out close to the evening and they walked out in groups. Seeing how they were full of vigor, envied their youthfulness. After being busy for some time, Serenity started to shift the shelves at the front of the store inside. Mr. Charles was carrying his big bowl again, scooping up mouthfuls of food as he walked and wandered over to Serenity¡¯s store. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re closing the store so early today?¡± Serenity hummed and exined, ¡°Jasmine is treating us to dinner.¡± ¡°Oh, right. Jasmine and Mr. Bucham are engaged. We haven¡¯t gotten the chance to congratte her.¡± ¡°Jasmine wille tomorrow. It won¡¯t be toote for you to congratte her then, Mr. Charles.¡± Serenity watched Mr. Charles eat and asked, ¡°Did Mrs. Charles let you have vegetables only?¡± ¡°Meat has been expensivetely. Since we bought less meat, I¡¯ll let the elderly and children have them while I have the greens. In fact, vegetables are also expensive now. We almost can¡¯t afford to eat them anymore. If we lived on a farm and grew vegetables, we¡¯d be self-sufficient and can save some money. ¡°Everything in the city costs money. As much as we try to live frugally, there¡¯s always a sum of money spent for our monthly expenditure.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Afterining about the recent meat prices, Mr. Charles asked with concern, ¡°Is your sister feeling better?¡± Sonny¡¯s abduction caused too much of a stir in Wiltspoon. People like Mr. Charles were bound to know. Chapter 1484 Chapter 1484 Chapter 1484 ¡°Thanks for your concern, Mr. Charles. My sister is doing much better now and is recovering quite well,¡± Serenity replied. ¡°That¡¯s good, that¡¯s good.¡± Mr. Charles ate some of the vegetables in his bowl again. ¡°Serenity, I¡¯ll tell you something. Can you give me some advice and tell me if it¡¯s reliable or not? I told Mrs. Charles, and she scolded me.¡± Serenity chuckled and said, ¡°Mr. Charles, go ahead. What is it? I¡¯ll listen to it and give you some advice.¡± ¡°You know I can tell fortunes, right? But I didn¡¯t learn it from a teacher and somehow learned from others to get into it. I also read some books and figured it out myself.¡± Mr. Charles stopped eating and said softly, ¡°But I think I can now set up a fortune-telling stall by the road or in the park. I¡¯ll just do it during my free time so I can get some extra money for my family, though I still have to tend to our grocery store. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°It¡¯s just that as our children and elders grow older, middle-aged people like us are under more pressure. It¡¯s exhausting for our family to rely solely on our grocery store¡¯s ie, so I want to earn some extra money. However, Mrs. Charles scolded me terribly. ¡°She asked me to tell her what the seven winning numbers of the lottery will be tonight. Oh, no, tomorrow. Today is Wednesday, and the draws are only done on Thursdays. She wants to put all her money into buying the special draw. The special draw¡¯s odds are higher than the regr one. It¡¯s a 1:100 ratio.¡± Mr. Charlesined, ¡°If I know what numbers will be drawn for the lottery, I would¡¯ve been richer than the richest man long ago. Would I need to set up a stall by the road? She scolded me for being lazy and trying to sneak out to y.¡± Serenity responded with a smile, ¡°Mr. Charles, remember to call me and let me know if you know the winning numbers for tomorrow. I¡¯ll also spend all my fortune on the special draw.¡± ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t tease me. I just think that I can now set up a stall with my skill level. Any money earned counts.¡± ¡°Mr. Charles, if you want to earn extra money, you don¡¯t have to set up a fortune-telling stall in the park. Many would think that those who set up stalls in the park are swindlers; those who are truly skilled won¡¯t need to do so as customers will go to them.¡± Mr. Charles said after a moment of silence, ¡°I don¡¯t have other skills. I was only interested in this and studied it for many years before feeling that I finally grasped a part of it.¡± He was quite urate with Serenity¡¯s fortune. Mr. Charles had long told his wife that Serenity would have a rich and honorable life. Ordinary rich families would not be her match. Now that Serenity had married into the Yorks, the richest family, Mr. Charles thought that he was right. That was why he had the idea of setting up a stall at the park to earn some money. ¡°There are many professions in the world, and every profession produces an expert. If I support what you want to do, I¡¯d feel like I¡¯m promoting superstition. That said, I still think that you should go for it and give it a go if it¡¯s what you want. Whether you seed or fail, you won¡¯t regret it as long as you¡¯ve tried. ¡°Mr. Charles, you still need to go back and have a proper chat with Mrs. Charles. Since you¡¯ll do it during your free time and won¡¯t affect your grocery store¡¯s business, she¡¯ll understand and agree to it. After all, you¡¯re doing it for your family.¡± Serenity did not stop moving things while she talked to Mr. Charles. Once she was done moving them, she returned to the counter to take her bag and picked up her phone to put it into her pocket. She said to Mr. Charles, ¡°Mr. Charles, a married couple can only live happily bymunicating.¡± Mr. Charles smiled and replied to her after some thought, ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re over a decade younger than me, but you¡¯re more perceptive. You really woke me up from my dream. You¡¯re getting off work now, aren¡¯t you? In that case, I won¡¯t bother you any longer. I¡¯ll go back and discuss it with Mrs. Charles.¡± With that, Mr. Charles left happily. He returned to his family¡¯s grocery store. Serenity watched Mr. Charles leave and only retracted her gaze after some time. She pulled down the shutter and locked it. Mr. Charles¡¯s life was a reflection of thousands of ordinary people. A middle-aged person had the old and the young to look after. They would not dare fall sick or bezy, and they would work hard to earn money to support their family. How stressful. Chapter 1485 Chapter 1485 Chapter 1485 Serenity visited her sister in the hospital first. When she arrived at the hospital, Liberty and Sonny had finished their dinner. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny was delighted to see Serenity. He ran to her asking her to carry him. Serenity picked him up and saw her sister getting ready to wash the insted lunch boxes. She quickly said, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯ll wash them.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t need to. I¡¯m also bored now, so I¡¯m just looking for things to do.¡± Otherwise, Liberty would have let Mrs. Lane wash the lunch boxes long ago. ¡°You closed the bookstore pretty early today.¡± Serenity stood at the bathroom door with her nephew in her arms. While watching her sister wash the lunch boxes with hot water, she responded, ¡°Jasmine is treating us to dinner. Sonny, you¡¯re full from dinner already. I was going to take you to dinner.¡± Liberty chuckled and said, ¡°I¡¯m being raised like a pig now. I eat, sleep, and repeat every day. Moreover, the food brought by Sam every day is delicious. If I keep going at this on a daily basis, I¡¯ll grow to a hundred sixty pounds again when I get discharged.¡± She was someone who gained weight easily. As long as she ate a little more, her waist would be thicker. ¡°There¡¯s no such thing. I see that you¡¯ve lost a lot of weight.¡± Liberty had almost died but survived, after all. ¡°Take Sonny with youter. He¡¯s bored from spending all day here with me. He always wants to watch cartoons on my phone, but I don¡¯t let him because it¡¯s bad for his eyes.¡± Liberty washed the lunch boxes and continued, ¡°Seren, before youe over tomorrow, go to my ce and bring Sonny¡¯s set of Lego blocks so he can y with them when hees after ss. It¡¯s better than watching cartoons on the phone. ¡°Bring the reading and writing set as well. I¡¯m super bored now, so it¡¯s the perfect time for me to teach him to read and write. He¡¯s going to kindergarten in September and will learn something then. Preschool is the same as hiring someone else to take care of him.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Kindergarten tuition was not cheap nowadays. A semester could easily cost several thousand dors or even ten thousand dors for better ones. If a child started now, they would need to attend three years of kindergarten to go to elementary school. Raising a child was the most expensive thing to do, or children would not be known as ¡°money- eaters¡±. ¡°Okay.¡± Seeing that her sister was fine, Serenity quickly left the hospital with Sonny and went to York Corporation. It was after work time by the time they arrived. ¡°Mrs. York. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± When Serenity entered, employers who saw her along the way greeted her with smiles. Sonny, who was being held by her, stood out the most. The little one was handsome and cute. When some senior managers stopped to talk to Serenity, he greeted them sweetly and was praised for that. Zachary knew Serenity had arrived the moment her car entered the building. He had long finished his work at hand and only waited for Serenity in his office because she said that she woulde to pick him up. Zachary immediately took the elevator and went downstairs when he knew Serenity had arrived. ¡°Uncle Zak.¡± Sonny was sharp-eyed and saw Zachary. He broke free from Serenity and dashed toward Zachary like a happy little bird. When Sonny¡¯s adorable voice was heard, many people stopped and turned to look at their cold- faced CEO. They saw their CEO taking a few quick steps forward. He squatted and opened his arms for Sonny to run into his embrace. Sonny buried his head into Zachary¡¯s arms. Following that, Zachary carried him up and spun him in circles that heughed out loud. Zacharyughed as well. Everyone else was speechless. Was this their cold-faced CEO? He had such a gentle side. It seemed that their stone-cold CEO liked children. Given how well their CEO treated his wife and nephew, for all they knew, he might be a stay- at- home dad after Mrs. York gave birth to a child. He might evene to work with the baby. Chapter 1486 Chapter 1486 Chapter 1486 Everyone imagined Zacharying to work with a baby in his arms. They could not help but shiver and did not dare imagine it! The senior managers who were talking to Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Mrs. York, Mr. York is here. We¡¯ll be leaving first.¡± They did not want to be third wheels. Serenity grinned and nodded. After the senior managers left, she walked over to the man and the kid with a smile. ¡°Zachary, you have to hold him tight.¡± Some people did not hold their children tight when lifting or spinning them, causing them to fall on the ground. The consequences would be serious. Zachary stopped lifting and spinning Sonny in the air. He lowered Sonny and carried him instead as he responded with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll hold him tight. I won¡¯t let him fall no matter what. ¡°Sonny, am I good?¡± Sonny answered, ¡°Uncle Zak, you¡¯re good-very good.¡± The little guy thought, ¡®As long as you stop calling me a third wheel, you¡¯ll be even better.¡¯ Sonny finished talking and wrapped his arms around Zachary and kissed him on the face. Afterward, he acted shy and buried his head on Zachary¡¯s shoulder. Zachary smiled from ear to ear after he was kissed by the little guy. He said to Serenity, ¡°No wonder Duncan is extra fond of Sonny. This little one is truly likable and lovable.¡± Serenity chuckled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t you know who raised him? I raised him, so of course, he¡¯s adorable.¡± Zachary looked at his wife. ¡°Why are you looking at me like that? What I said is true-I brought Sonny up.¡± ¡°You¡¯re right, you¡¯re right. I just wanted to see how thick-faced my wife has be since being together with me.¡± ¡°You admit that you¡¯re thick-faced.¡± Serenity took one of Zachary¡¯s arms. The two of them walked outside together. Zacharyughed and said, ¡°I am-I¡¯m very shameless in front of you. Nana likes to criticize me the most. Sometimes, she calls me out so much that I wonder if I¡¯m truly her grandson.¡± Serenity wanted tough when she recalled how Grandma May attacked Zachary verbally in the past. Nheless, Serenity held back so that she could maintain her good image as the CEO¡¯s wife. ¡°Nana only criticizes her grandsons. She likes to make fun of her closest ones but is gentle and polite to outsiders. Everyone says she¡¯s kind and generous.¡± Zachary had noments. Serenity was right. No wonder Grandma May liked Serenity so much. It was because Serenity matched her taste. ¡°Was everything okay this afternoon?¡± Zachary asked Serenity. ¡°You know best if everything was okay.¡± Zachary¡¯s men were always secretly protecting her. He could learn about her every move at any time if he wanted to. Serenity added, ¡°What can happen to me now? They¡¯ve been caught and are waiting to be sentenced.¡± Even so, she also learned a lesson from this. Mischievous people were difficult to deal with. Serenity would try not to offend petty people in the future. This time, Serenity offended Mrs. Newman and her daughter to save Camryn. The mother and daughter were brutal. Now, 90% of Mrs. Newman¡¯s dark forces were cut off, and the rest of them were being pursued by the police. This case had somewhat ended. ¡°Oh, there are a few things still on my mind. It¡¯s about Elisa and Remy. I wonder when the two of them will remove the veil.¡± Zachary leaned into her ear and whispered, ¡°That¡¯s their business. You should put your mind on our wedding.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t it still early?¡± They still had several months to prepare for it. Serenity was not in a hurry at all. She felt that there was still plenty of time. Zachary said he had asked an internationally famous bridal designer to tailor a wedding dress for her. That designer had note yet. Serenity did not care about these things because Zachary would arrange them nicely.Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1487 Chapter 1487 Chapter 1487 ¡°It¡¯s still early, but we have to get ready nheless.¡± Zachary added, ¡°You don¡¯t need to worry about it and just need to work with the designer. The designer will create a wedding dress that suits your figure and temperament. You¡¯ll definitely be the most beautiful bride when you put it on.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°I think I¡¯ll still be your most beautiful bride even if I don¡¯t wear a bespoke wedding dress.¡± She was confident about her appearance. Zachary grinned as well. ¡°Yes, you¡¯ve always been my prettiest bride. I just want to give you the best.¡± He also wanted to prepare his wedding gifts for her. His properties and what would be given by his family would be used as the bridewealth. Zachary and Serenity left the office building and walked together to Zachary¡¯s Rolls-Royce. ¡°You don¡¯t need to follow us anymore,¡± Zachary said to the bodyguards. The bodyguards responded to him with respect. Only after Zachary started the car and drove out of York Corporation did the bodyguards leave. Josh invited his friends to eat at Wiltspoon Hotel. He did not invite many people. Apart from his close buddies, he also invited Callum, Remy, and Julian. Julian¡¯s father, Walter, had privately asked Josh to ask his son to join them. His intention was clear-he wanted Josh to show off his rtionship to stimte Julian and see if Julian would be willing to get married. Josh knew Julian was very unfeeling, but Julian was a few years older than him, so he was worried for his older cousin. When Josh¡¯s uncle asked him to invite Julian, he agreed to it right away. On the other hand, Jasmine only invited Serenity and Elisa, but thetter could not make it at thest minute. Since they were at Wiltspoon Hotel, Josh called Kevin to join them too. Once everyone arrived, apart from Josh and Zachary, who were apanied by their wives, the others were all bachelors. ¡°Mr. Bucham, Jasmine, congrattions.¡± Serenity gave her most sincere blessings when she saw the loving couple who had just be husband and wife. Jasmine responded with a smile, ¡°Thank you.¡± She bent down to pick up Sonny and said, ¡°Sonny.¡± ¡°Jazz, you look so beautiful tonight.¡± Sonny praised Jasmine¡¯s beauty as soon as he was picked up. Jasmine did not dress up on purpose. She only put on light makeup and changed into a red colored outfit. A joyful asion would boost one¡¯s spirits. As such, Jasmine was glowing and looked especially charming. She smiled even brighter after beingplimented by the little one. ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re a handsome boy too.¡± Sonny was very calm when he was called a handsome boy. He had heard such praises a lot. ¡°Everyone, take your seats.¡¯ Josh greeted everyone and asked them to sit. ¡°Serenity, can I sit next to you?¡± Callum asked with a smile. When Zachary red at him, he immediately said, ¡°I-I¡¯ll sit next to Sonny.¡± Serenity was in between Zachary and Sonny. If Callum sat next to Sonny, he would still be close to his sister-inw. Zachary only eased his tense face when Serenity held his hand. Text content ? N?velDrama.Org. What a domineering man. Chapter 1488 Chapter 1488 Chapter 1488 Everyone present knew Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding date had been set. The wedding will be held at the end of this month, so they all teased Josh. Josh openly epted everyone¡¯s banters and blessings. ¡°Except for Zachary, everyone here is a bachelor.¡± Josh filled his ss with wine and said to everyone with a smile, ¡°Here¡¯s a toast to all you bachelors. From today onward, I¡¯m officially out of your ranks. You don¡¯t need to invite me to any bachelor activity from now on. Enjoy getting high among yourselves.¡± Remy remarked with a smile, ¡°I envy you, Mr. Bucham.¡± On the other hand, Duncan noted, ¡°From today onward, Josh will be henpecked like Zachary.¡± Zachary responded in a deep voice, ¡°I can be henpecked, but you don¡¯t have the chance to even if you want to.¡± Duncan replied to him, ¡°Zachary¡­ that¡¯s hurtful. Serenity, you need to control him.¡± Serenity took some food for her nephew. Sonny had eaten dinner and did not want to eat again, but there were some sides that he liked to eat, so he helped himself to them. ¡°Zachary didn¡¯t say anything wrong, so I don¡¯t need to control him.¡± ¡°Look, this is what a married couple is like. Your hearts are connected.¡± Duncanughed and added, ¡°You¡¯re the most envied couple among our buddies.¡± Kevin suggested, ¡°Duncan, if you¡¯re envious, hurry up and find a girlfriend so we can envy you. Didn¡¯t you chat happily with Harmon Corporation¡¯s vice president at the Marshall¡¯s party? I saw you dancing to a song, and you look well-matched.¡± Duncan immediately looked at Serenity, afraid that she would tell Liberty about it. Nheless, Serenity was also present that night and saw everything. She would have told Liberty long ago if she wanted to. As such, he replied to Kevin calmly and honestly, ¡°That¡¯s my mom¡¯s chosen candidate, not someone I like. I already have a crush on someone. If I sessfully pursue her and am lucky enough to marry her, I¡¯ll definitely treat you to a big meal as Josh did.¡± Apart from the two married couples, the bachelors did not know Duncan liked Liberty. Remy was gossipy and asked out of curiosity, ¡°Mr. Lewis, you have a crush on someone? I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve heard that you¡¯re pursuing someone.¡± Kevinughed and said, ¡°Remy, you underestimate Duncan. If he likes someone, he won¡¯t pursue her and will directly go to City Hall to get their marriage license.¡± ¡°F*ck you. Do I look like an uncultured man?¡± Duncan jokingly punched Kevin. Everyone was teasing each other. Only Julian was silently eating and drinking. He did not interrupt their conversation. This was because he could not join in and was not interested in the topic. He only showed up because his cousin was no longer a bachelor and invited him to a celebratory dinner. ¡°Jasmine, have some fish. I removed the skin for you.¡± When Josh noticed that Julian was only focusing on eating and drinking without saying anything, he began to disy his affection for Jasmine. Despite that, Josh was also usually very considerate of Jasmine whenever they ate. He removed the fish skin for Jasmine because she did not like it. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. As for Zachary, he wore disposable gloves and peeled shrimps for Serenity and Sonny. Serenity liked to eat shrimp. No matter who invited her and Zachary to dinner, they would have to order shrimp. It was also a way to let Zachary show how he spoiled his wife. ¡°Julian.¡± Josh took some more food for Jasmine and called out to Julian. Julian looked at him and asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± ¡°Julian, why aren¡¯t you saying anything? Everyone is chatting happily.¡± The othersughed andmented, ¡°Julian, you¡¯re the king of bachelors.¡± Julian chuckled and said, ¡°I¡¯m not like you guys; I¡¯m not a normal person.¡± Everyone else was speechless. Serenity and Jasmine were gossipy and pricked their ears. They had heard many stories, but they wanted to know about Julian the most. Sadly, whatever they heard about Julian was what he wanted to be known, which came directly from him behind the scenes. It was difficult for them to learn about him themselves. When Serenity and Jasmine heard Julian say that he was abnormal, they became extremely curious. Chapter 1489 Chapter 1489 Chapter 1489 Josh asked with concern, ¡°Julian, why are you not a normal person?¡± Julian pursed his lips and answered, ¡°I¡¯m quite close to all of you, and Jasmine and Serenity are. experienced in rtionships, so I¡¯m not afraid of beingughed at by you. I don¡¯t react to women. Everyone was lost for words. Serenity and Jasmine were best friends indeed. The shrimps they picked up fell back into their te at the same time. ¡°Julian, y-you¡¯re making an excuse, right? We won¡¯t rush you to get married, so you don¡¯t need to tell us that and scare me.¡± Josh thought of his uncle¡¯s hopeful gaze and his aunt¡¯s expectant look. He felt that he had asked something he should not have. His cousin¡¯s words were shocking. It scared him. ¡°Julian, what about men¡­?¡± Remy asked probingly. He and Julian were sitting next to each other. Remy had moved his hips discreetly. He was ready to switch seats if Julian said that he was into men. However, who was Julian? Remy¡¯s petty action could not escape his eyes. Julian tugged at Remy¡¯s arm in amusement. Remy almost bounced up. ¡°Remy, you don¡¯t need to be so shocked. I¡¯m not interested in men either. I just have an illness. I¡¯ve seen a psychiatrist and also a famous specialist for male diseases. They all said my situation is difficult to handle.¡± ¡°Julian, don¡¯t scare me.¡± ¡°Josh, am I the kind of person who lies? What I said is true. I won¡¯t joke about my health.¡± Julian looked grave. Serenity put down her utensils and asked tentatively, ¡°Julian, is what you have the hypoactive sexual desire disorder?¡± Julian looked at Serenity and asked her in return, ¡°You¡¯ve heard of it?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve read about it in books. It¡¯s indeed hard to treat the illness, and it depends on your mental health as well. You¡¯ll live an ordinary life if you can meet someone who can change you, or you¡¯ll really end up alone.¡± The others were speechless. Julian nodded. ¡°That¡¯s what my doctor told me. So, Josh, go back and tell my dad that you don¡¯t need to keep an eye on me anymore and that they should stop being hopeful. I don¡¯t know who can save me.¡± ¡°Julian, that must be an excuse.¡± After hearing what Julian said, everyone thought the same as Josh. The other bachelors cursed inwardly at the same time, ¡®Julian is really going all-out so that he won¡¯t be rushed into marriage. ¡®He¡¯s willing to im that he has a disease and doesn¡¯t mind losing face.¡¯ Nevertheless, they could not learn from Julian¡¯s ruthlessness. No wonder Julian could control many of their secrets, whereas no one knew his secrets unless he revealed them himself. Moreover, they could not prove whether the secrets he revealed were truly secrets. In any case, Julian was tall and handsome. He went to the gym and was in pink of health. How could he be ill and have hypoactive sexual desire disorder? The others who had not read misceneous books had not heard of the disease. Jasmine asked her best friend after some thought, ¡°Is it the same disease the male lead from the romance novel I read has?¡± ¡°I read about it in a reading club, not in a novel. You know I¡¯m not into novels.¡± When Jasmine and Serenity were in the bookstore, the former read novels while thetter knitted crafts. Serenity would asionally read books during her free time. She liked to read popr books or history books. Only when she had no choice would she read novels that were famous among men. Serenity would not read the kind of modern romance novels that Jasmine read every day. Josh thought that his cousin really seemed to be uninterested in women. Could it be that Julian had hypoactive sexual desire disorder indeed and was not making an excuse? Nobody present could confirm whether Julian told the truth or not, but Walter could. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. As long as Josh told his uncle about this, his uncle would confirm it. Josh decided to return to Bucham Manor tonight to tell his uncle about this. If his cousin was truly ill¡­ There was nothing he could do about it. Julian¡¯s doctor said that it would be difficult for him to be treated. Since Josh did not study medicine, what could he do to help? Chapter 1490 Chapter 1490 Chapter 1490 Josh could not throw a talent show for Julian, could he? After peeling a te full of shrimp for his beloved wife, Zachary removed his disposable gloves and said in a deep voice, ¡°I¡¯ve heard of the disease. ¡°Julian, let nature take its course. How about I introduce my nana¡¯s most trusted fortune teller to you? He can tell if you¡¯re going to be forever alone or will have many children and grandchildren.¡± Julian asked, ¡°Grandma May¡¯s most trusted psychic? If she trusts the psychic so much, he must be really skilled.¡± He respected Grandma May very much and believed in what she said. ¡°Julian, let Grandma May¡¯s trusted psychic see if someone can save you, okay?¡± Josh was impatient. He said to Zachary, ¡°Zachary, call your nanater and ask her to introduce the psychic to my brother.¡± Serenity wanted tough. She tried her best to hold back. Zachary said seriously, ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll call her when I get back.¡± Julian looked at Zachary with an indescribable look. Zachary calmly epted his gaze. ¡°Aunt Ser, I want to drink water.¡± A childish voice was heard, breaking the silent atmosphere. ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity was going to pour Sonny a cup of warm water when Zachary had gone to do so. Soon, Zachary returned with the water for Sonny. ¡°Thank you, Uncle Zak.¡± Sonny was well-mannered and thanked him. Julian looked at Sonny and asked Serenity, ¡°Serenity, he¡¯s your nephew, right? He¡¯s cute and well- behaved.¡± Serenity reached out to caress her nephew¡¯s head. ¡°Yes, his name is Sonny.¡± ¡°Uncle Jul, you look very cute too,¡± Sonnyplimented Julian back. Everyoneughed. Julian chuckled and responded, ¡°Little friend, I¡¯m an adult now and can¡¯t be described as cute.¡± ¡°Uncle Jul, you¡¯re good-looking-as good-looking as Uncle Zak,¡± Sonny paraphrased. Julian teased him on purpose. ¡°Who¡¯s better looking? Me or your Uncle Zak?¡± Sonny answered without thinking, ¡°Uncle Zak, of course.¡± Everyoneughed again. The little one was biased toward his family. Zacharyughed as well. His love for Sonny was not in vain. ¡°Serenity.¡± While everyone was talking andughing, Callum called out to Serenity softly. When she looked at him, he whispered, ¡°Serenity, I didn¡¯t see Camryn. She wasn¡¯t in the shop this afternoon. I think she¡¯s just avoiding me.¡± Callum could not reach Camryn as well. It was because Camryn had changed her phone number. The p mark on Callum¡¯s face had disappeared. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Serenity, can you help me contact her?¡± Callum no longer asked his sister-inw to plead for him. He only wanted to know where Camryn was at the moment. Chapter 1491 Chapter 1491 Chapter 1491 Zachary looked at his younger cousin. Callum immediately pretended as if nothing happened and ate his food. However, his mind was not focused on the food. He originally wanted to go directly to the Newmans¡¯ residence, but he had no choice but toe here since Josh had invited him. Thus, he did not go to the Newman residence but came to his family¡¯s hotel first. Serenity saw Callum¡¯s reaction and figured out what was going on. She turned her head to look at Zachary. Zachary asked her gently, ¡°Are you full, honey?¡± Serenity hummed. He fed her until she was full. ¡°Stop ring at Callum.¡± Serenity whispered while taking out her phone. When she called Camryn¡¯s number, what answered her was a mechanical voice saying, ¡°The number you¡¯ve dialed is unavable.¡± Camryn¡¯s phone was turned off. Since she could not see, she did not have messaging apps. It would be hard to contact her if she did not pick up her calls. ¡°Her phone is turned off. Go to her ce tomorrow to have a look. I¡¯ll drop by her shop tomorrow morning and put in a word for you while buying some flowers for Liberty. Callum regarded Serenity as the only person who could help him, so Serenity had no choice but to give him a hand. ¡°Thank you, Serenity,¡± Callum hurriedly uttered. He still wanted to go to the Newmans¡¯ residenceter. However, Camryn was not at home. After Callum forced a kiss on her and her assistant returned to the store, she left Spring Blossoms. Then, she called Dalton and told him she was waiting for him at the roadside about a hundred meters from the store and asked him toe and pick her up. After Dalton fetched her from the roadside, she asked him to send her to a seaside vi in Wiltspoon. Camryn had a vi by the sea, but it was not registered under her name; it was under Dalton¡¯s name. That way, it would not raise any eyebrows. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Camryn liked the sea. Before she became blind, she would often hail a cab to the seaside alone when she was wronged and bullied at home. She would sit on the beach by the shore, quietly looking at the sea and enjoying the breeze. She thought about her father. After her father¡¯s death, her mother burned all of her father¡¯s photos. All the valuables left behind by him were sold by her mother, and all the worthless ones were thrown away. If Camryn wanted to know what her father looked like, she had to look at the album kept by her youngest aunt or see his photo on his grave when she went to the cemetery to visit her grandparents¡¯ graves every year. Her father¡¯s grave was far from her grandparents¡¯. Her youngest aunt told her that her grandparents liked her father the most. Back then, her youngest aunt had suggested that he be buried next to her grandparents¡¯ graves so that he could be reunited with his parents in the afterlife. However, her uncle strongly disagreed and insisted on burying her father far away from her grandparents. He also bought the two empty burial pits next to her grandparents with the intention of having his wife and himself buried next to his parents when they died. Camryn did not understand what it meant when she was young. After growing up, she understood. Her uncle was jealous of her father, so he did not want her father¡¯s grave to be too close to her grandparents after his death. In the sea-view vi, Camryn was apanied by Dalton and held an afternoon video conference with the senior management of Newman Enterprise, telling them that her family had undergone great changes after her mother and sister were arrested. Her uncle was also implicated and was temporarily being held by the police for investigation. Of course, she did not tell them that she was the one who reported on her uncle. At first, her uncle was just taken in for questioning, but he was detained not long after. Chapter 1492 Chapter 1492 Chapter 1492 Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Camryn knew that it was not because the police had found evidence of her uncle harming her father so quickly. It was because of the incident with her mother, as well as the evidence that Mr. York provided, that made it so her uncle could not escape. Out of the evidence that Josh found, most of them pointed to Mrs. Newman on the surface. He suspected that Mr. Newman used his wife as a scapegoat. However, who was Josh Bucham? He managed to find more evidence against Mr. Newman. In the end, Mr. Newman lost his freedom. The incident with Mrs. Newman caused a huge stir in Wiltspoon. After being reported on extensively by the media, not only people in Wiltspoon knew about it; people in other cities who watched the news also learned about the incident. Of course, the people in Newman Enterprise were in the know too. They were wondering who would be in charge of thepany after Mr. Newman and his wife went to jail. Who would inherit Newman Enterprise? Mr. Newman¡¯s only son? However, he was still a high-school student. Mr. Newman protected his only son very well, so they had never seen the young man before. Camryn usually learned about the happenings of Newman Enterprise through Dalton. Many people felt that since she was blind and young, there were many things that she did not know how to do. When she held the video conference with everyone, they doubted if she could manage Newman Enterprise. However, the conference dispelled the doubts of the senior management. The eldest daughter of the Newman family was very well-informed about thepany¡¯s situation. Moreover, the deputy managing director, Dalton, was sitting next to her. Dalton had always been deeply trusted and relied on by Mr. Newman. If he supported Camryn, what else could they say? They were just senior executives. In the end, Newman Enterprise belonged to the Newman family. As long as it was a member of the Newman family who continued to pay their sries, it did not matter to them who was on top. At that moment, Camryn was still at the sea-view vi. She did not know that Callum went to beg Serenity for help after failing to contact her. Serenity did not know that Camryn had changed her phone number. She was also considering whether to tell Serenity her new number, but if she did, then Callum would find out as well. Camryny on a recliner in the yard. Next to her was a table, and on the other side of the table was another recliner as well as arge parasol that could shelter her from the wind and rain both during the day and night. Dalton came out with the cooked dishes and ced them one by one on the table. Then, he went back inside and took some empty tes for Camryn and himself. ¡°Let¡¯s eat.¡± ¡°Sorry for making you cook, Dal.¡± Daltonughed. ¡°There¡¯s no need to apologize. Try the chowder first.¡± He gave Camryn a bowl of seafood chowder. ¡°Thank you.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t need to be so courteous with me either.¡± He also served a bowl of chowder for himself. ¡°Do you want me to take you back to the city after eating?¡± Dalton asked gently. ¡°Yes. I¡¯m sorry for the trouble. Camryn had originally wanted to stay, but she figured that Dalton would not leave Wiltspoon tonight since it waste now. If she stayed, Dalton would stay as well because he was worried. Although they were like siblings, she was afraid that living together like this would cause his girlfriend to misunderstand. Thus, she decided to go back to the city. Her younger brother would be back in two days. He usually came home once a month. Camryn and her mother did not tell him about the changes in the family since they did not want to affect his studies. Chapter 1493 Chapter 1493 Chapter 1493 ¡°If you want to stay here for a few days to avoid Mr. York, I¡¯ll let my girlfriend know and have her fly over tomorrow to keep youpany.¡± He was a man, so it was inconvenient for him to take care of Camryn. Moreover, since he had decided to be her brother figure, he had to keep a certain distance from her. He would help her with everything, not just with work. After all, she could not see yet. He was the one who helped her set up the video conference in the afternoon. ¡°There¡¯s nothing going on between Mr. Callum and I,¡± Camryn hurriedly exined herself. Duncan ced some food on her te and looked at her for a long time before saying, ¡°You were in your first year of middle school when I first met you, and it¡¯s been fourteen years now. I know very well what kind of person you are. ¡°Although you seemed very busy and dedicated during the video conference, I can tell that you¡¯re a little distracted. Your mind starts to wander as soon as you stop talking. I don¡¯t know what happened between Mr. York and you, but when I saw himing over, he was obviously jealous, ¡°He misunderstood our rtionship, didn¡¯t he? Then, he questioned you, you didn¡¯t exin anything, and then you guys fought?¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Camryn paused from eating, then continued to eat as if nothing was wrong. ¡°We didn¡¯t fight, Dal. We¡¯re just ordinary friends. What¡¯s there to exin? Stop asking. I¡¯m fine. I was just thinking that Trenton ising back. Will he hate me when he finds out about everything?¡± In the Newman family, Camryn could not care less about her own mother, let alone her stepfather and half-sister. However, she cared about her younger brother. Although she was always cold to him whenever he tried to care for her, her heart had long been melted by the warm man. She thought of him as her real family. Trenton was different from Carrie. He treated her like a real sister and was extremely protective of her. However, it was because he defended her that Carrie told her mother to send him to a boarding school after he started elementary school. He only came back once a week. Now, he was in his third year in high school and could onlye back once a month. He would have to take his college entrance exam soon. Camryn was afraid that the matters at home would affect him. ¡°He¡¯s having his entrance exam soon.¡± Camryn said softly, ¡°He has good grades, so my uncle and mother both hope that he can get into Poltham University, but he said that he doesn¡¯t want to go to a university that far. He wants to take the exam for Wiltspoon University and stay in Wiltspoon. ¡°He said he would be able toe back and see me often if he went to a local university.¡± Dalton was well aware that of all the people in the Newman family, only Trenton Newman was a good person. He thought about it and suggested, ¡°Don¡¯t tell Trenton the truth when hees back this weekend. Just tell him that his parents and older sister went out on a trip together and tell him the truth when his entrance exams are over. ¡°I think Trenton is an understanding person. He¡¯s seventeen now and knows how to tell right from wrong. After you exin everything to him, give him the choice to resent or hate you, if he wants to.¡± After a moment of silence, Camryn agreed with Dalton¡¯s suggestion. When she was investigating her father¡¯s cause of death, she knew that one day, her brother and her would stand on opposite sides. younger ¡°Don¡¯t think too much about it and eat first. Seafood doesn¡¯t taste as good when it¡¯s cold. I¡¯ll send you back to the city after you finish eating.¡± Dalton filled Camryn¡¯s te with more food and said, ¡°You don¡¯t want to tell me about you and Mr. York, but I¡¯ll tell you the truth. If you have the chance, you have to grab onto him. ¡°The York family can be your backing. They won¡¯t care about your family assets. I don¡¯t believe that there¡¯s another man who would approach you if not for your family fortune.¡± Camryn said faintly, ¡°I¡¯m blind, Dal. I¡¯m not a good match for Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter as long as his family and he doesn¡¯t dislike you. Look at Mr. Zachary York and his wife. They¡¯re not well-matched either, but aren¡¯t they lovey-dovey now? ¡°Don¡¯t care about what others say. What¡¯s important is that you two love each other.¡± Chapter 1494 Chapter 1494 Chapter 1494 Camryn fell silent. Dalton said everything that he should say. When he saw her remain silent, he knew that it was because she felt inferior. If it were other men, perhaps Camryn would not feel unworthy just because she was blind. However, it was the second son of the York family they were talking about. The Yorks were the richest family in Wiltspoon, while all of the Newman family¡¯s assets barely broke a billion dors. Furthermore, some of their assets might be seized. Thewful businesses that they were able to keep in the end might only amount to a few hundred million in assets. It was notparable to the hundreds of billions that the York family had. Due to her own problems, Camryn developed a sense of inferiority and felt unworthy of Callum. The two finished their meal and took a short rest, then Dalton drove his car and sent Camryn back to the city. When he arrived in the city with Camryn, Callum and the others left the hotel. Callum had a few drinks and did not drive. He borrowed a bodyguard from Zachary to drive his car and went straight to the Newman vi after leaving the hotel. He had a vi there anyway, so he could return to his vi to rest after going to the Newman family¡¯s vi to find Camryn. If she was not at home, he would go to her flower store. Wiltspoon wasrge, but those were the only two ces she could go. He did not believe that he would not be able to find her tonight. Serenity carried the drowsy Sonny and said to Zachary, ¡°Babe, call Mrs. Lane and tell Liberty that I¡¯ll take Sonny back today. I¡¯ll have Jim send Sonny to ss tomorrow morning.¡± Liberty should be resting at this time. Zachary hummed and took out his phone to call Mrs. Lane, asking her to ry to Liberty not to worry and that they would bring Sonny home with them to rest today. Mrs. Lane said, ¡°Ms. Hunt has already gone to bed. She waited until nine o¡¯clock but didn¡¯t see you bring Sonny back, so she guessed that you would bring him home with you.¡± ¡°Okay. You rest early too.¡± Zachary hung up the phone and took Sonny from Serenity. Sonny opened his eyes, saw that it was his Uncle Zack, and called out to him softly before closing his eyes again. He leaned on Zachary¡¯s chest and fell asleep. Zachary¡¯s heart melted at the child¡¯s soft voice. He really, really wanted a child too. A child with Serenity.. Their baby would surely be as cute as Sonny. Zachary¡¯s heart looked forward to having a child, but he did not dare voice out for fear of putting pressure on Serenity. She was already worried that she was infertile since she was unable to get pregnant even after half a year into their marriage. If he said that he wanted a child, Serenity would overthink again and ask him to go to the hospital together with him for another checkup.. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary sighed in his heart. He told himself, ¡®Don¡¯t rush, don¡¯t rush. ¡®We¡¯ll definitely have a child of our own. ¡®The psychic said that we¡¯re destined to have a son and daughter. ¡®He also said that it¡¯ll only happen during fall.¡¯ Chapter 1495 Chapter 1495 Chapter 1495 After getting into the car, Serenity asked her husband, ¡°Are you really going to introduce that psychic to Mr. Bucham?¡± Zachary adjusted Sonny¡¯s position so that the boy could sleep morefortably. ¡°Of course. Nana might be asleep now, so I¡¯ll ask her for his contact tomorrow and pass it on to the head of the Bucham family, Walter. Then, he can ask the psychic to read Julian¡¯s fortune. That way, Julian could not run away. If they gave the contact information to Julian, he might just throw it away. ¡°Do you think Mr. Bucham is telling the truth? Does he really have a condition?¡± Zachary thought about it and said, ¡°It might be true, but it might also be an excuse. The only one who can prove it is the head of the Bucham family.¡± He believed that Walter had already received the news. There was nowhere for Julian to run. Like Zachary, Julian was a very powerful person. However, no matter how amazing he was, Walter was more powerful. Julian was no match for his father. If the psychic also divined that there was no wife in Julian¡¯s life, then the Bucham family would give up. Ring ring ring¡­ Zachary had just finished speaking when he received a call from Julian. He answered the call. ¡°Zachary, I¡¯ve helped you out a lot before. You have to help me this time.¡± Julian did not beat around the bush. ¡°Give me the contact details of that psychic your nana trusts. I¡¯ll go meet him first. Also, I really do have a condition.¡± He was genuinely unresponsive to women. Of course, he was unresponsive to men too. However, he was healthy both physically and mentally. He just had no response to that kind of thing. The doctor said that if he met the person right for him, he would be able to be a true man. Otherwise, he would have to live like a priest for the rest of his life. Julian did not mind. He graciously announced his condition tonight because he wanted to shut Josh¡¯s mouth. If word of it spread to his parents¡¯ ears, they might finally stop pushing him to marry. He would gain some peace and quiet. However, Zachary¡¯s words made him worried. He was worried that the psychic was actually good and divined that he had a partner in his future. If that happened, his parents would definitely drive him out of the house so he could pursue his destined person. How would he know who his destined one was?Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. He could not hug every woman he saw just to see if he reacted to them, right? People would think he was a pervert. Zachary said apologetically, ¡°I haven¡¯t asked for the psychic¡¯s contact information.¡± He did not believe in such superstition in the first ce. He simply cooperated with his nana out of respect for her. ¡°I¡¯ll need to ask Nana for his contact, but she should be asleep by now, so I can¡¯t disturb her. I¡¯ll help you ask her tomorrow.¡± Julian paused before saying, ¡°You didn¡¯t bother asking for the number of such a powerful psychic?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t believe in such things.¡± ¡°Why did you bring it up if you don¡¯t believe in it? It¡¯ll be toote even if you ask your nana for the contact information tomorrow. My dad acts faster than I do.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°Then there¡¯s nothing I can do to help.¡± ¡°Zachary, I have a feeling that you¡¯re trying to set me up. I just don¡¯t have proof.¡± Zacharyughed again. ¡°How could I try to set you up, Mr. Bucham? I just want the people around me to be happy and blessed like me.¡± ¡°You mean you want us to be as henpecked as you.¡± Julian spat at him. Zachary turned his head to look at his beloved wife beside him and said, ¡°I think my life now is pretty good. I hope that Seren and I can go on like this forever.¡± Even when their hair turned gray far into the future, their rtionship would still be as good as it was now-just like his grandparents¡¯. Chapter 1496 Chapter 1496 Chapter 1496 Zachary¡¯s grandparents¡¯ rtionship was remarkable. His grandfather doted on his nana until the end of his life. Julian choked and then hung up the phone. Serenity listened to the conversation between the two men andughed. ¡°Mr. Bucham¡¯s parents are also pushing him to get married pretty insistently, huh?¡± ¡°He¡¯s about the same age as Duncan. You¡¯ve seen how anxious Mrs. Lewis is about Duncan¡¯s marriage-that¡¯s how anxious Julian¡¯s parents are. As parents, they probably have the same mentality. They start to grow anxious when their children reach their thirties. Material ? N?velDrama.Org. Zachary was the same. When he turned thirty, his nana began to push him and made him marry Serenity. In the past, he had many misunderstandings about Serenity. Now, he was thankful for his nana. ¡°I don¡¯t care about other people, but I want my brothers and friends to be happy.¡± Zachary was not a nosy person. He only cared about the people around him and wanted them to be as happy as he was. Serenity leaned on his shoulder. ¡°Me too.¡± Zachary held Sonny with one arm and wrapped the other around Serenity. In the Newman family vi, only the first floor was lit. Callum¡¯s car was parked in front of the vi. He told the bodyguard to honk. Soon, someone came out of the house. It was a maid. When she saw a car parked outside the gate, she thought Mr. Newman was released by the police and hurriedly went to open the gate. Then, when she opened the gate and saw Callum¡¯s car, she realized that the car did not look familiar-it was not her employer¡¯s car. The maid tried to close the gate. Callum lowered the window and poked his head out to ask, ¡°Is Ms. Newman back?¡± Callum saved Camryn and sent her home before. At that time, Mr. and Mrs. Newman looked full of gratitude for him and invited him into the house for tea. The servants of the Newman family had seen Callum before. ¡°Are you here for Ms. Camryn, Mr. York? She hasn¡¯t returned yet. I don¡¯t think she¡¯ll being back. She has been staying at her flower storetely.¡± Callum hummed. ¡°I¡¯ll leave a number with you. Please call me when shees back. I have something urgent to discuss with her.¡± The maid agreed easily. The servants felt that the person in charge of the house was about to change. Callum gave the maid his cell phone number. The maid remembered it. Only then did he ask the bodyguard to drive him back to his vi. He had the bodyguard make a detour to Spring Blossoms prior, but Camryn was not there either. When he arrived, Spring Blossoms was not yet closed. He walked around the store and even searched the small room inside the store, but Camryn was nowhere to be seen. He thought Camryn had gone home, but she was not there either. Where did she go? Not long after Callum left, Dalton and Camryn came back. ¡°I won¡¯t go in. Don¡¯t let anyone know that we¡¯re acquainted for the time being. Wait until you have full control of Newman Enterprise.¡± Mr. Newman had been in charge of Newman Enterprise for more than two decades. He naturally had trusted aides in thepany. Dalton was five years older than Camry and worked for her. In order to help her, he joined Newman Enterprise as soon as he graduated from university. However, he was naturally not as good as Mr. Newman since he only worked at thepany for nine years. However, in the eyes of others, Dalton was Mr. Newman¡¯s deeply trusted confidant. Mr. Newman had sounded and observed Dalton for many years and only trusted him after determining that Dalton was whollymitted to Newman Enterprise¡¯s future. Chapter 1497 Chapter 1497 Chapter 1497 ¡°Okay, drive safe,¡± Camryn spoke softly. Dalton hummed and watched her get out of the car. She walked to the gate of the vi, took out her key, touched the lock, and slowly unlocked the side door. Anyone who looked at Camryn like this would think that she was a normal person. They would not believe that she was blind. She could live like a normal person in familiar environments. Dalton watched her unlock and push open the door before leaving. Then, he saw Callum walking over. Dalton instinctively wanted to m on the brakes, but he drove too fast. By the time he saw. Callum clearly, his car had already driven past Callum. He gave up on braking. Through the rear mirror, he saw Callum walking toward the Newman family vi. Did Callum see him send Camryn back? If he did, then there was no helping it. Callum already misunderstood their rtionship, and Camryn was unwilling to exin it to him. Dalton did not intend to reveal his true identity either, so he could use this as a chance to test if Callum was sincere to Camryn or just seeking a sense of novelty. Camryn did not know that Callum hade. When she pushed open the vi door, she startled the servants inside who came out to see her. A maid came over. ¡°You¡¯re back, Ms. Camryn.¡± Camryn hummed. The maid took the initiative to close the front door but saw Callum approaching. She turned to Camryn and said, ¡°Ms. Camryn, Mr. York is here.¡± Camryn froze for a moment before saying calmly, ¡°It¡¯s veryte now. Please ask Mr. York to go. back. We¡¯ll discuss anything he needs to say tomorrow.¡± Then, she went into the house. Callum heard her words but pretended he did not. He walked inside before the maid could close the door. When the maid saw this, she silently closed the door and withdrew. Now, there was only Ms. Camryn and Mr. Trenton left. Mr. Trenton was still in school, but he would come home this weekend. The servants of the Newman family were all hired by Mrs. Newman and usually stood on Mrs. Newman and Carrie¡¯s side. They listened to their orders and did many things to bully Camryn. Now, there was only Camryn left in the family. Even if she could not see, she was still their master, so the servants¡® attitude toward her changed. They did not dare ignore her like before. Whether they could stay and work here most likely depended on Camryn¡¯s decision. Of course, there were people who thought differently. Mr. Trenton was about to take his entrance exam, and he would stay at home for a while after the exam. Their employer, Mrs. Newman, was arrested but Mr. Trenton was still around. They thought about enduring it for now and assisting him in taking control of the Newman family after he graduated from high school. They must not let Ms. Camryn be the master of thisrge vi. It seemed like Ms. Camryn was not nning to do anything to them now, but who knew if she would settle the scorester? However, Mr. Trenton was Mrs. Newman¡¯s son. Although he was usually very caring for Ms. Camryn, the servants felt that he would certainly stand on his mother¡¯s side rather than his half- sister. Callum took a fewrge strides and walked up to Camryn. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Camryn stopped when she heard footsteps. There seemed to be a shadow in front of her. She raised her head to look at Callum quietly. She could see a ck shadow, but nothing else. ¡°Camryn, you were with that man all day, weren¡¯t you? Where did you go together? It¡¯s sote now. Did he just send you back?¡± Dalton¡¯s guess was correct. Chapter 1498 Chapter 1498 Chapter 1498 Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Callum saw Dalton sending Camryn back. Before Camryn returned, Callum asked his bodyguard to drive away from the Newmans¡® vi, but after thinking about it, he got out of the car midway and walked back, intending to wait for her at the entrance of her residence. Dalton was unfamiliar with Callum, so he failed to recognize Callum by thetter¡¯s back when he drove Camryn back in his car. When Dalton left, Callum was only a hundred meters away from the Newmans¡® vi. He saw Camryn getting out of Dalton¡¯s car. Callum was originally worried about Camryn, but when he saw that scene, his thoughts went haywire. The more he thought about it, the angrier and more jealous he felt. Just what was the rtionship between that man and her? She was with him for the entire afternoon and evening. ¡°Tell me. Who is he?¡± Callum questioned her. Camryn did not answer him and tried to walk past him. Callum reached out to grab her wrist, pulling her back. She tried to wrench hisrge hand away, but he grabbed so tightly that she could not break free. ¡°Please let go!¡± Callum stared at her for a long time before softening his tone. ¡°Camryn, I¡¯m sorry. You can p me if you¡¯re still angry at me. You can p me until both my cheeks are swollen and teach me a lesson. ¡°I promise you that I won¡¯t treat you like that again. I won¡¯t do that to you without your consent. I ¡°Camryn, I don¡¯t think of you as a task. After getting to know you, I¡¯ve reallye to like you. Putting aside my nana¡¯s assignment, I think I already have feelings for you. It¡¯s because I like you! that I get jealous when I see you with another man. ¡°But you said that we have nothing to do with each other, so I¨CI¡­ I was wrong, Camryn. You can hit me and scold me, but don¡¯t run away from me like this, okay? ¡°Don¡¯t turn off your phone. My thoughts will run wild if I can¡¯t reach you. I worry if you get into an ident somewhere. I couldn¡¯t focus on work the whole day. All I could think about was you.¡± Callum¡¯s apology was alsoced with a confession. He did not dare say he was in love with Camryn, but he could say that he really liked being with her. He also liked to tease her a lot. At first, he probably thought of her as a task given to him by his nana. However, after being told off by his sister¨Cinw, he understood one thing¨Che had feelings for Camryn now. Otherwise, if he did not like her, he would not care about her being intimate with another man. He forced a kiss on her because he was jealous. Callum thought he was well¨Ceducated and would never do something as uncouth as forcing himself on a woman. However, he did it! He kissed her without her consent. Camryn could not see. When he treated her like that, she must have felt that he was bullying her. He did not respect her. She would feel like he was treating her like a ything. He never yed with women. From the first time he saw her photo and his nana said that she was the wife chosen for him, he had treated her as his wife, no matter how reluctant he was initially. Camryn¡¯s expression remained calm and quiet. After waiting for Callum to finish, she was silent for a long time before saying softly, ¡°Mr. York, it¡¯s very late now. I¡¯m tired and want to rest first. Please leave, okay?¡± Chapter 1499 Chapter 1499 Chapter 1499 ¡°Camryn¡­¡± Callum said in a low voice, ¡°Tell me who that man is, and I¡¯ll go back.¡± After a moment of silence, Camryn said, ¡°He¡¯s someone I saved fourteen years ago. We¡¯re like siblings to each other. He has a girlfriend he¡¯s about to marry.¡± She did not mention Dalton¡¯s name. It was to prevent Callum from doing a background check on him. She just told Callum that Dalton and she were like siblings. She was telling Callum to stop thinking nonsense. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you mention him before?¡± ¡°Did you ask? Why would I talk about him if you¡¯ve never asked?¡± Callum was struck speechless. He thought she had a monotonous circle of life. He also investigated her before and found that her life was indeed dull. However, he realized that he did not investigate her in¨Cdepth. If he had delved deeper, maybe there would have been a surprise. Now, he really was surprised. No, he was shocked. He was shocked by her and thought that she actually had a boyfriend. It was good if they were just like siblings. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Camryn. I misunderstood you and did something to hurt you. I¡¯m sorry. Can you forgive me?¡± Camryn was silent. Callum saw her like this and knew that she was still angry at him. Thinking about how she was willing to tell him her rtionship with that man, Callum did not pursue the subject anymore. He took her hand and said gently, ¡°I¡¯ll walk you inside.¡± Camryn pulled her hand back. ¡°No need, I can walk without a cane in my own home.¡± Callum remembered about the cane as she brought it up. When she threw her cane at him, he caught it and left with it. He remembered that he ced it in his car¡­ ¡°Camryn, your cane is still in my car. I¡¯ll pick you up tomorrow and bring you to the store, then return it to you.¡± Camryn¡¯s lips moved, but she did not say anything to refuse. ¡°You¡¯re the only one at home right now. I¡¯ll only be assured if I help you inside.¡± ¡°My aunts are all around. Aunt Evelyn wille over tomorrow.¡± After such a major incident, Aunt Evelyn was sure toe and apany her. As for her two other aunts, all they knew to do was call her on the phone to yell at her or go to her, store to point at her and scold her for being an ungrateful wench. They scolded her for falsely using her uncle of killing her father when it was her uncle who raised her. They said that her father¡¯s death had nothing to do with her uncle and that her father was unfortunate to have his life cut short, and so on and so forth. Camryn knew that her two other aunts had a good rtionship with her uncle, but her father was their brother too. How could they smother their conscience and say that her uncle had nothing to do with her father¡¯s death? They went as far as to say that her father was unfortunate and had his life cut short. Her two elder aunts were close to her uncle, who killed her father with the help of her mother, which meant that they were the same kind of people. Thus, it was not unusual for them to be able to say such a thing. Camryn realized that fact. Callum heard her say that her Aunt Evelyn would being over tomorrow. Evelyn was the elder in the family who was most concerned about Camryn. He had toe over and meet her tomorrow. ¡°I¡¯ll leave after I walk you inside.¡± He insisted on doing what he said he would, so Camryn said nothing more. The two went into the house silently. Callum kept his word and left after helping Camryn inside. After he left, Camryn went back to the nanny¡¯s room that she shared with. However, the nanny who was separated from her by a board had not slept yet. The nanny heard the sound of the door opening and knew that Camryn was back. She knocked on the board. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°If you have something to say, just say it.¡± Chapter 1500 Chapter 1500 Chapter 1500 Camryn spoke faintly. The nanny asked from the other side of the board, ¡°Ms. Camryn, are you dating Mr. York?¡± ¡°What¡¯s it to you?¡± The nanny choked. After a moment, she smiled sheepishly. ¡°Ms. Camryn, Mrs. Newman and Ms. Carrie were around before. They didn¡¯t like you and targeted you all the time. We were hired by Mrs. Newman, so even if we sympathize with you, we couldn¡¯t help you openly. ¡°You also know that I¡¯ve never done anything to hurt you. I just don¡¯t pay much attention to you usually.¡± If she did not pay attention to Camryn, then she did not have to hurt her. The nanny was neither good nor evil. ¡°Mrs. Newman and Ms. Carrie have been arrested, Mrs. Newman will probably get a heavy sentence, but Ms. Carrie will be released in a few years. She has always been against you. What will you do when she¡¯s released? ¡°Mr. York is quite good. Most importantly, his family is powerful. If you and Mr. York get together, you must hold onto him tightly. As long as you can marry into the York family, you don¡¯t have to worry about Ms. Carrie getting back at you when she¡¯s released.¡± Camryn ignored her. The nanny said so much but did not get a response, so she stopped talking. Camryn received a phone call from Dalton, who asked if Callum and she were fine. ¡°I¡¯m fine. He came to apologize. He left after helping me into the house.¡± Dalton was relieved and said a little more to her before hanging up. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. The night passed without a word. The next morning at daybreak, Zachary was awakened by his cell phone. He was extremely displeased. Groping for his phone, he answered it without looking at the screen and said in a frigid voice, ¡°This better be important!¡± Callum said carefully, ¡°It¡¯s me, Zachary.¡± Zachary wanted to hang up the phone as soon as he heard Callum¡¯s voice. Why was this guy calling at the crack of dawn? ¡°Don¡¯t hang up. I¡¯m on the first floor of your house. Are youing downstairs, or should I go upstairs and knock on the door? I don¡¯t want to wake Serenity.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression was sullen. He turned to look at his wife beside him. Serenity was still sleeping soundly. He could not let his brother¡¯s knocking wake her up. He said in a low voice, ¡°Wait there.¡± Callum smiled ingratiatingly. ¡°Okay.¡± A few minutester, Zachary was sitting across from his brother with a dark expression. ¡°What do you want? Can¡¯t you see the time? Why did you wake me up at dawn? I would¡¯ve beaten. you up if you weren¡¯t my brother.¡± Callum smiled apologetically. ¡°What time will Serenity wake up? I¡­ I still want her to help put in a good word for me with Camryn.¡± ¡°Callum York, do you need a spanking? Why are you bothering your sister¨Cinw with something so trivial? Even if you have to bother her, can¡¯t you wait until past nine?¡± Callum continued to smile apologetically. ¡°I¨CIt¡¯s just my first time. I haven¡¯t experienced this before and feel insecure. Zachary, how were you able to stay angry at Serenity and ignore her for days? ¡°Now that Camryn is cold to me, I can¡¯t stand it. I feel anxious if she doesn¡¯t forgive me.¡± Zachary red at him. Callum did not dare make another squeak. ¡°If you feel anxious, that¡¯s your problem. If you can¡¯t even solve a little conflict, then I advise you to tell Nana that you¡¯ve decided to be a bachelor for the rest of your life.¡± In the past, everyoneughed at him and thought he had low EQ. Now that it was Callum¡¯s turn, Zachary felt that his cousin¡¯s EQ was not much higher. Chapter 1501 Chapter 1501 Chapter 1501 Zachary got up and walked up the stairs; he could not be bothered about Callum anymore. ¡°Zachary¡­¡± ¡°Get out!¡± Callum was speechless. When his eldest brother¡¯s figure disappeared, he grumbled, ¡°He only cares about his happy life. and doesn¡¯t care about his brothers anymore.¡± Sam came in with a bouquet of flowers. Callum had ordered Sam to cut blooms from the garden for a bouquet as soon as he arrived. ¡°Mr. Callum, you got the cold shoulder from Mr. Zachary, didn¡¯t you? Why didn¡¯t you look at the time first. Only roosters get up this early.¡± A rooster needed to get up early because it had to crow. ¡°Mr. Callum, I¡¯ve wrapped the bouquet for you as you ordered.¡± Sam handed the bouquet to Callum. Callum took the bouquet and looked at it, then said with contempt, ¡°Sam, I remember the flowers blooming brilliantly in the garden. Why are the flowers in this bouquet so small? They don¡¯t look. pretty either.¡± Sam said, ¡°The missus likes thoserge and shy flowers, so I can¡¯t cut them for you. I can only cut the smaller ones that the missus doesn¡¯t like. You can have as many of those as you like.¡± Callum was speechless. He thought of how there were not many flowers in his vi, and the flowers did not bloom well. That was why he came to his brother¡¯s ce to get a bouquet of flowers and ask his sister¨Cinw for help again. Although Serenity promised to help him today, he was just anxious. He wanted her to put in a good word for him as soon as possible. Then¡­ He ended up offending his brother. The bouquet that Sam wrapped up for him was not beautiful either. Although Callum disdained the bouquet for being ugly, the flower shop was not open this early in the morning, so he could not buy another one. Thus, he could only leave with this bouquet. As for his sister¨Cinw, he could only wait patiently. He did not have the guts to disturb Zachary and Serenity any longer. Otherwise, his brother would order the bodyguards to toss him out in a body bag. That would be too embarrassing. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Not long after Callum left, Serenity woke up. She opened her eyes to her man¡¯s handsome face in front of her. She smiled and wrapped her arms around Zachary¡¯s neck. ¡°Morning, babe.¡± Zachary bowed his head and pecked her red lips, responding gently, ¡°Good morning, honey.¡± ¡°What time is it?¡± ¡°It seems to be half past seven.¡± ¡°It¡¯s already half past seven?¡± Serenity quickly pushed Zachary away and sat up. Looking around, she saw that her nephew was still asleep and lowered her voice. ¡°Is breakfast ready? We¡¯ll send some over to my sisterter.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Sam will handle it.¡± Serenity hummed. She could rest assured with Sam handling the affairs. She changed her clothes and washed up as fast as she could, then took Sonny¡¯s clothes and woke him up. The little guy was still groggy when he was woken up and would fall into Serenity¡¯s arms from time to time, wanting to sleep. ¡°Sonny, you can sleep in the carter. Let¡¯s go downstairs for breakfast then we¡¯ll send food over to Momter.¡± Chapter 1502 Chapter 1502 Chapter 1502 Sonny perked up when he heard that they were sending breakfast over to his mother. Zachary looked at the two with a smile in his eyes and said, ¡°Honey, when I see you and Sonny, you look like a parent who has to wake their child up for school every day.¡± Serenity looked at him and was just about to tell him to change his clothes, only to see that he had already changed. ¡°Did you get up early? You already have your suit on.¡± ¡°A certain lovesick fool called me and woke me up. Serenity guessed that it was Callum and asked, ¡°He called so early? And you didn¡¯t ride on the radio waves to beat him up?¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t beat him up since he¡¯s my brother. He can¡¯t even solve a little problem, but he had the gall to laugh at me back then. The person who can help him the most is Nana, but he doesn¡¯t know to go to her instead.¡± ¡°Speaking of, I haven¡¯t seen Nana in two days. I miss her.¡± Zachary picked Sonny up and went downstairs with Serenity. ¡°She must have gone out to pick out more granddaughters¨Cinw. She can¡¯t stand being cooped up at home. If she¡¯s too idle, it¡¯ll be us who suffer. Her happiness is founded on our pain.¡± ¡°Would you dare say that in front of her?¡± Zachary paused before he answered, ¡°No¡­ I¡¯d really be in pain if I said that.¡± Serenityughed at him. ¡°Wuss.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not embarrassing to be a wuss when ites to Nana.¡± It seemed like Zachary had suffered under his nana¡¯s hands quite often. He waspletely willing to be a wuss rather than mess with her. In his words, it was not embarrassing to be a wuss when it came to their nana. ¡°Nana is also irresponsible. She tossed a photo to Callum and Kevin and skedaddled. Now, Callum doesn¡¯t know who to ask for help, so hees to us to trouble us every few days. ¡°Does he think I¡¯m very experienced? Besides, can they copy our circumstances?¡± Zachary was just annoyed and grumbled for a while that Callum came over bright early in the morning and disturbed his sleep with his wife. ¡°People who are in love are like that. You have many younger cousins, so they¡¯ll alle to you for help in the future. It¡¯s bothersome, but you can just get used to it. It¡¯s because you¡¯re the eldest.¡± Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯ll call Nana to ask for the psychic¡¯s contact info to pass to Walter and tell her to be more responsible in the future. Don¡¯t just matchmake two people and then wash her hands off the case.¡± If Grandma May were here, she would say, ¡°I¡¯ve already given you the sheep, but you want me to cook it and serve it to you too? ¡®What¡¯s the point of raising so many wolves? ¡®I have to worry about every single wolf. ¡®It was better to raise sheeps. Unfortunately, the York family doesn¡¯t have sheep of their own, so I have to try my best to find sheeps from other families.¡± The psychic said that Zachary and Serenity were destined to have a son and daughter. Grandma May would have thought, ¡®Once our family finally has sheeps of our own, we¡¯ll have to build a higher fence and protect our sheeps. We have to be careful so as to not let wolves from other families catch our sheeps.¡® Grandma May gleefully set up the wolves of her family with the sheeps of other families. However, when it came to other families¡¯s wolvesing after her sheeps, she would sharpen her knife and get ready to ughter the wolves! Zachary called Grandma May during breakfast. Grandma May said, ¡°You don¡¯t need to ask. Walter came to visit me in personst night.¡± Zachary paused and said, ¡°He really acts quickly. How was it, Nana?¡± ¡°How would I know? I just gave him the psychic¡¯s contact number. If you want to know, you can move into the Bucham residence and watch the show.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary felt that he still needed Julian. If he went over tough at Julian¡¯s expense, thetter might not help him again. He said, ¡°Never mind. Everyone has their own fate There¡¯s no point in me worrying over Mr. Bucham. I have enough on my te worrying about my brothers. Nana, you can¡¯t just matchmake them and toss them to the wind.¡± Grandma May immediately held the phone away from her ear and said, ¡°Zack, the signal here is really bad. I can¡¯t hear you. What did you say? I can¡¯t hear you clearly. Anyway, I¡¯m hanging up now.¡± Then, she hung up the phone. Zachary was speechless. Chapter 1503 Chapter 1503 Chapter 1503 Zachary ced the phone on the table and said to Serenity. ¡°Nana is getting craftier.¡± He wanted to call her devious instead but was afraid that she would get back at him if word got to her. In the end, he decided to keep to himself. ¡°A matchmaker is only responsible for introducing two people to each other, not to guarantee that the couple will have a child.¡± Serenity teased Zachary. Grandma May was only responsible for helping her grandsons choose their wives. How they pursued their wives was their business; it was not something for her to worry about. She still had several grandchildren at home who were still single. Recently when Dn and the others learned about their nana¡¯s method of choosing their wives, all of them grew nervous. In fact, they were shivering in fright. Every day, they wondered what kind of wife their nana would choose for them. Recently, they tried sweet¨Ctalking and coaxing their nana every day, wanting her to let them remain single for a few more years. They prayed that their nana would not move on too quickly to them. In short, they went through all kinds of hoops to remain single. After breakfast, Serenity did not have time to rest and had to deliver breakfast to her sister. However, Sonny had to go to ss. Jim was already waiting to pick him up. ¡°I don¡¯t want to go to ss. I want to go with you and see Mom.¡± The little guy had thoughts of quitting after a few days of ss. When Serenity brought him out of the house and he saw Jim waiting for him outside, he immediately turned and wrapped his arms around Serenity¡¯s legs. Serenity squatted down and said to her nephew, ¡°Sonny, we can¡¯t give up halfway. We have to stick to the end. Didn¡¯t you say that you wanted to learn self¨Cdefense so you can protect Mom and me? ¡°If you don¡¯t persist, you won¡¯t be able to learn self¨Cdefense, and you won¡¯t be able to protect Mom. ¡°Sonny, no matter what you do, when you decide to do something, you have to take it seriously. You can¡¯t give up halfway.¡± Sonny pursed his lips and said pitifully, ¡°It¡¯s really tiring. I¨CI just want to rest. I want to go to the hospital to stay with Mom.¡± Serenity knew that self¨Cdefense training was very tiring. When she learned as a child, she had wanted to quit often but she persevered. Now, ordinary punks were no match for her. ¡°Sonny, I know it¡¯s very tiring, but you have to persevere. Learning self¨Cdefense is all about perseverance. You have to practice every day. Once you get the basics down, it¡¯ll be easier for you later on. ¡°Jim will collect you after ss and send you to the hospital to apany your mom. Follow Jim to ss first, okay?¡± Sonny pouted. Serenity wrapped an arm around her nephew, kissed his cheek, and said gently, ¡°Our Sonny is the most amazing boy.¡± Sonny stopped pouting. ¡°I¡¯ll go to ss, Aunt Ser. I want to be the most amazing boy.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°You can do it, Sonny!¡± Serenity stood up. Jim came forward. ¡°Missus, I¡¯ll send Sonny to ss now.¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°Be careful on the road.¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Jim picked up Sonny, who waved his little hand to Serenity to say goodbye. Soon, Jim drove the car away and took Sonny away from the vi. Chapter 1504 Chapter 1504 Chapter 1504 While Sonny went to ss, Serenity went to the hospital apanied by Zachary. She asked Zachary to stop when they passed by Spring Blossoms. She got out of the car and went into the store to buy a bouquet of flowers. Camryn was not in the store. ¡°Is your boss making a delivery?¡± Serenity asked the store assistant. ¡°Our boss went to get the goods early in the morning and will probably only be back at around ten o¡¯clock. Do you have anything important to ask her, Mrs. York? I can ask her to call you when she comes back.¡± Serenity hummed. ¡°Okay, tell her to ring me when she¡¯s back.¡± The assistant agreed and saw Serenity out of the store.. Serenity held the bouquet and got into the car, saying to Zachary while closing the door, ¡°Camryn isn¡¯t in the store. She went out first thing in the morning to get some goods and won¡¯t be back. until around ten o¡¯clock. Tell Callum that I might not be able to leave at ten. I can onlye over if Jasmine is at the store.¡± Zachary said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about him. He reaps what he sows. I already gave him two days off. If he still can¡¯t handle his own business, then I¡¯ll start doubting his ability.¡± ¡°I promised him that I¡¯ll help put in a good word for him, so I have to keep my word. After all, I¡¯m his sister¨Cinw.¡± Serenity thought of how Zachary had a total of eight younger cousins. If they all came to her for help, she could probably set up a marriage counselingpany. It was all because she was their eldest sister¨Cinw. Zachary stopped talking and drove the car to send his wife to the hospital. The couple bumped into Duncan at the hospital. Duncan held a bouquet of flowers in one hand and an insted lunch box in the other. It seemed like he prepared a tonic soup for Liberty. He did not see Serenity and Zachary because they were behind him. Zachary said to Serenity, ¡°Duncan is quite knowledgeable. Even an oaf like him knows to send tonic soup to Liberty.¡± Serenity gave him a look. He had never given her tonic soup to drink before. Zachary was not dumb. He quickly caught onto the hidden meaning of his wife¡¯s expression. He smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯ll cook and make tonic soup for you this weekend.¡± ¡°I think between you and your friends, you¡¯re the slowest when ites to rtionships. When Mr. Lewis realized his feelings, he dove right into delivering flowers and soup. As for Mr. Bucham, his EQ is ten times yours. Before, you only knew how to pull a long face and get me to obey you 100 %.* Zachary cleared his throat and blushed slightly. ¡°Honey, we¡¯re at the hospital. There are lots of people coming in and out. Don¡¯t embarrass me like that.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not yelling till the whole world can hear,¡± Serenity whispered before raising her voice to call out to Duncan. ¡°Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan heard Serenity. He stopped in his tracks and turned his head. He smiled when he saw his friend with his wife. ¡°Zachary, Serenity, good morning. Are you here to see Liberty too?¡± ¡°Yeah, I brought breakfast for my sister. What are you doing here, Mr. Lewis?¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary winked at his friend. Duncan thought, ¡®Holy crap! Is that really Zachary? Did he just wink at me?¡® If Zachary could read Duncan¡¯s thoughts, he would be speechless. ¡°I¨CI¨CI came to see Liberty and send her some tonic soup to nourish her body.¡± Serenity looked at the insted lunch box he was carrying and said, ¡°I also brought tonic soup for her, along with breakfast. Nana and my aunt also often send soup over.¡± Liberty was probably scared to drink tonic soup now. After a moment of silence, Duncan said, ¡°You send her tonic soup as a token of your sincerity, and I send her tonic soup as a token of mine. Serenity, thank you for letting your sister know about my feelings for her. I¡¯m serious about your sister. I hope you won¡¯t stop me from pursuing her.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I won¡¯t support you, but I won¡¯t stop you either. This is my sister¡¯s business, so it¡¯s up to her. I¡¯ll support her no matter what decision she makes. ¡°However, I do have a few words for you, Mr. Lewis. If my sister is still unable to ept you, please be the bigger person and let her go. Don¡¯t keep pestering her.¡± Chapter 1505 Chapter 1505 Chapter 1505 Upon hearing what Serenity said, he could not help but think, ¡®As expected of Zachary¡¯s wife.¡± The husband and wife said almost the exact same thing. ¡°Serenity, I can only say that I won¡¯t give up as long as your sister doesn¡¯t remarry.¡± Duncan spoke solemnly. There was nothing else Serenity could say. Putting aside everything else, she held quite an admiration for Duncan. The three of them entered the in¨Cpatient building together. When they arrived at Liberty¡¯s ward, they saw Hank standing by the door early in the morning. This time, Hank came alone. Olivia and Chelsea did not tag along.. Hank was also holding a bouquet and an insted lunch box. His parents asked him to do this. Serenity was a little surprised when she saw Hank. Did her grandparents not stop him froming out? However, Olivia and Chelsea did note, so it was still better than before. Hank was a walking contradiction now and could easily be driven away. ¡°Hank Brown, are you here to disturb Liberty¡¯s rest again? Get lost!¡± Noah walked past the trio and stormed up to Hank! With one hand, he snatched Hank¡¯s bouquet, threw it on the ground, and lifted his foot to step on it. The flowers were ttened by his stomps. He wanted to snatch the insted lunch box from Hank¡¯s grasp, but Hank gripped the handle tightly. The York family bodyguards watched from the side as Noah tried to wrestle the lunch box away. ¡°Noah.¡± Serenity walked over and called out to her youngest cousin. ¨C¡°Serenity, you¡¯re here. This guy is really hateful. He used his parents to distract Grandmom and Granddad while he slipped away. I chased him all the way here with my car but couldn¡¯t catch up to him and he managed toe here to disturb Liberty.¡± As Noah spoke, he saw Hank distracted and finally managed to grab the lunch box. Just when everyone thought he would throw it into the trash, he opened it up instead and drank the soup straight from the box. The others were speechless. ¡°That soup isn¡¯t for you, Hunt.¡± Hank snatched back the insted lunch box, but Noah had drunk half of the content inside. He flushed with anger and yelled at Noah, ¡°Did you inhale the soup? Half of it is gone!¡± ¡°You¡¯re the stingy one for only preparing one bowl of soup. What¡¯s strange about me drinking half of it in one go? In order to stop you, I didn¡¯t even eat breakfast. I¡¯m starving now. Anyway, I already tried the soup. Liberty would definitely be disgusted by it. It¡¯s better for me to drink the rest.¡± Noah grabbed Hank¡¯s lunch box again, turned around, and finished off the soup. Hank looked at Serenity. Serenity said with a cold face, ¡°Mr. Brown, my sister doesn¡¯t want to see you. Please don¡¯te here again.¡± ¡°Serenity, Jessica did it because she was threatened. She¡­¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Serenity¡¯s expression grew colder. ¡°You show your face so early in the morning not because you care about my sister, but to plead for your wife, didn¡¯t you? You really do love your wife. Not only did you forgive her for harming your own son, but you also want my sister to forgive her. ¡°Noah, please drag this eyesore out after you finish the soup.¡± Noah responded, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Serenity. I¡¯ll take care of him for you.¡± Serenity did not want to deal with Hank anymore and entered the ward as the bodyguards opened the door for her. Chapter 1506 Chapter 1506 Chapter 1506 Zachary shot a look at the bodyguard. The bodyguard got the hint. Duncan was thest person to enter the ward. Hank noticed that Duncan too had bought flowers and that thetter was holding an insted box. Obviously, Duncan was trying to pursue Liberty! This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Hank immediately felt bitter about it. ¡°Liberty, Liberty¡­¡± After Hank called Liberty twice, Noah covered his nose and mouth to stop him from screaming. Noah was young. Besides, he had spent a short period of time with some hooligans, so he was ruthless. He would not show Hank mercy when dealing with him. Considering that Hank was used to sitting in the office, he was no match for the youngster who just turned eighteen. It was only until Noah dragged Hank far away while covering his nose and mouth that Noah let go of Hank. ¡°Are you trying to suffocate me?¡± Hank criticized Noah. ¡°Don¡¯t be rude. Technically speaking, you need to acknowledge me as your brother¨Cinw.¡± ¡°Pah. Brother¨Cinw? What gives you the right to be my brother¨Cinw? You¡¯re shameless. You divorced Liberty half a year ago, and it¡¯s been several months since you remarried. How dare you make me address you as my brother¨Cinw. Pah!¡± Noah, who was young and vigorous, showed disdain for Hank¡¯s words. He actually spat. His saliva was all over Hank¡¯s face. He treated Hank with so much contempt that he felt like puking. Hank promptly took out a piece of tissue paper and wiped the saliva off his face. ¡°Noah, you don¡¯t get along well with Liberty and her sister, do you? Is it because you¡¯ve gained any benefitstely? You oftene over to cause trouble for my family.¡± Noah snorted and said, ¡°If I don¡¯t side with Liberty, should I side with you? Although I don¡¯t get. along with Liberty, our surname is the same. Your surname is Brown! No matter how much conflict I have with Liberty, we share the same ancestor. ¡°Hank, let me warn you that if you continue to pester Liberty, I¡¯m going to do away with you. You won¡¯t even be able to drive around!¡± Aftershing out at Noah, Hank quickly fled. Liberty, who was in the ward, heard some noise from outside. Once her sister came in, Liberty asked, ¡°Why is it so noisy outside?¡± ¡°Granddad and Grandmom failed to stop Hank froming over. Luckily, Noah rushed over and kicked him out,¡± Serenity exined. She did not tell Liberty that Hank came to beg for forgiveness on Jessica¡¯s behalf. Although Jessica would be sentenced, thewyer would be able to request a lighter sentence for her if Liberty was willing to forgive her and considering that Jessica was forced to help Mrs. Newman. ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s time for breakfast.¡± Serenity ced the breakfast on the overbed table and added, ¡°Sonny has gone to the gym. He seemed quite reluctant to go today. He only did it after I spent some time coaxing him.¡± ¡°He¡¯s still young. He has never left me. Also, self¨Cdefense training is tiring. It was normal that he threw a tantrum. Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re here. Good morning.¡± Upon seeing Duncaning from behind, Liberty was momentarily dazed. She then greeted Duncan as usual. Duncan handed the bouquet of flowers to Liberty. Liberty hesitated for a moment but ended up taking it. She was now a patient, and Duncan was here to visit her. She could still ept the bouquet for the time being. If Duncan gave her a bouquet of flowers after she was discharged from the hospital, she would. not ept it. ¡°Liberty, I asked the cook to make you some soup, and I brought it over. Drink it while it¡¯s warm.¡± Duncan handed the insted box to Liberty. When he noticed that she was not taking it, he put it on the overbed table and said, ¡°I need to get to the office for a meeting. I¡¯ll take my leave first.¡± Then, he swung around, raised his legs, and strode away! Chapter 1507 Chapter 1507 Chapter 1507 Serenity watched Duncan walk out of the ward. After that, she turned her eyes to her husband. Zachary looked very calm as though Duncan¡¯s reaction was within his expectation. Zachary saw Duncan off. ¡°Seren, your store must be busy. You should return to your store.¡± ¡°Liberty, let me apany you.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t need you to. I can walk around on my own. I¡¯m fine. If it hadn¡¯t been for the doctor who insisted on having me stay in the hospital, I would¡¯ve wanted to be discharged right now.¡± She missed All You Can Eat. ¡°Listen to the doctor.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Stay in the hospital for a few more days. Once you¡¯re discharged, you can¡¯t return to the store and work straight away. You need to have a good rest at home.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve been lying on the hospital bed for nearly half a month. If I continue to do so after being discharged, my body will fall apart. Once I¡¯m out, I¡¯ll keep an eye on the breakfast ce and help. collect money without doing things on my own, okay? Don¡¯t worry. It¡¯s my body. I¡¯ll look after it.¡± Serenity opened the insted box and poured a bowl of soup for her sister. ¡°Liberty, are you going to drink the soup Mr. Lewis prepared?¡± ¡°How can I possibly drink so much? After Mr. Lewis walks further away, I¡¯ll ask Mrs. Lane and the rest to drink it. They¡¯ve been taking care of me here every day. It¡¯s not easy.¡± Duncan put down the flowers and insted box before he left. It was probably because he was worried that Liberty would decline to drink his soup. In fact, if Duncan had not left shortly, Liberty would have asked him to take the insted box away. Ever since Liberty knew that Duncan was interested in her, she wanted to keep a distance from him. She did not feel like drinking Duncan¡¯s soup. What was more, she could not drink so much. She usually shared the soup she received with Mrs. Lane and the rest, or she would pour it. Having gone through hardships in the past, she could not bear to waste the soup. Liberty let Mrs. Lane drink it. This way, Mrs. Lane could improve her health and take care of Liberty better. ¡°Please let Zachary and Mr. Lewis know that I can¡¯t drink too much of it. Ask Mr. Lewis to stop sending me soup. Anyway, I¡¯ll let Mrs. Lane and the rest drink the soup he sends over.¡± Serenity hummed in acknowledgment. ¡°Seren, you may go to work. You don¡¯t have to sit with me.¡± While having breakfast, Liberty urged Serenity to go to work. Helpless, Serenity had no choice but to reply, ¡°Alright, alright. I¡¯ll go to work. I just want to apany you for two more minutes. You¡¯re always shooing me away. Liberty, you¡¯re behaving like Mom. Mom used to hurry me a lot.¡± When Serenity was young, her mother had to rush her several times before she did something. Sometimes, Serenity would only do it after being nagged over ten times. ording to Serenity¡¯s mother, Serenity was aszy as a pig. She would only move after being rushed. ¡°It¡¯s good that someone¡¯s hurrying you. You should treasure it.¡± Serenity walked toward her sister¡¯s back and hugged her emotionally. Then, she said with a smile,¡± That¡¯s true. I like how you nag beside my ear and urge me to do things. This is a blessing.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. When Serenity was younger, she was annoyed by how her mother would always hurry her. After losing her parents, she wished she could hear her mother say, ¡°Lazybones, hurry up. I¡¯ve told you hundreds of times to do it, yet you¡¯re not moving a muscle.¡± ¡°Liberty, promise me that you¡¯ll take good care of yourself.¡± ¡°Mm, I will. I¡¯m still young. I don¡¯t want to die. I won¡¯t bear to part with you and Sonny.¡± Libertyughed and added, ¡°Stop behaving like a spoiled child. Hurry up and go to work.¡± Serenity withdrew her hand from Liberty and reminded her about something before walking out of the ward. Zachary just returned after seeing Duncan off. ¡°Why don¡¯t you spend more time with your sister?¡± Upon seeing that his wife came out, Zachary did not return to the ward. ¡°I wanted to, but my sister shooed me away. She wanted me to go to work and said that she didn¡¯t. need me to apany her.¡± Zachary held her hand. ¡°Liberty didn¡¯t want to interrupt our work. Let me send you back to your store, okay?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you need to attend the morning meeting?¡± Chapter 1508 Chapter 1508 Chapter 1508 Serenity asked Zachary, ¡°Callum took a day off, and Josh might not return to the office today.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°I can have the secretary postpone the meeting. Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll send you to your store. As for your car, I¡¯ll ask Harry to drive it there straight away.¡± Serenity did not turn him down. ¡°I¡¯ll pick you up in the evening. There¡¯s a social gathering at night, and I¡¯d like you to go with me.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity readily agreed. Only after Zachary sent Serenity back to her bookstore did he rush to his office and start his busy day of work. Jasmine came to the store today. Serenity mocked her yfully. ¡°Why don¡¯t you stay at home and prepare for the wedding? Your other half is desperate. I thought you might note to work today.¡± ¡°There¡¯s nothing much I need to do. Plus, it¡¯s boring to stay at home, so I came.¡± Jasmine looked radiant. Serenity felt that her best friend had be much prettier. Serenity stretched out her hand and pinched Jasmine¡¯s face whileplimenting her, ¡°Your face is so nice to touch. It seems to be glowing more by the day. Sure enough, women who are in a rtionship look beautiful. If I were a man, I would fall in love with Jasmine pinched Serenity¡¯s face. you too.¡± ¡°Your skin is glowing too. It seems that you applied the skincare products Zachary gave you and their effects are good.¡± Serenity grinned and said, ¡°Actually, the brand of his skincare products is simr to what Elisa gave me. He arranged for the best beautician to provide beauty services for me from time to time.¡± Zachary gave Serenity the best of everything material¨Cwise. He would never ill¨Ctreat her. Although they had a sh marriage, he had never treated her badly. ¡°Zachary has grown to be more considerate toward you. He has improved rapidly.¡± ¡°Nana said good men must be trained by yourself. At the mention of Grandma May, Jasmine said, ¡°It¡¯s been a while since Ist met Grandma May. I miss her so badly.¡± ¡°Jas, you miss me, huh? I¡¯m here.¡± Speak of the devil. Grandma May¡¯s voice preceded her appearance. She was still full of vigor and walked fast. Even so, she exuded an aura of nobility, elegance, and naturalness. Every time Serenity saw Grandma May, she secretly criticized herself for being blind and silly back then. She was under the impression that Grandma May was an ordinary olddy. ¡°Nana.¡± ¡°Grandma May, luckily I didn¡¯t bad¨Cmouth you, or you would¡¯ve heard it.¡± While chuckling, Jasmine put down the novel in her hand. In fact, she held it but had hardly read any pages. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. Following behind Grandma May was a handsome young man who was carrying a number of bags. Serenity promptly went forward to take two bags from the man. ¡°River is here.¡± It was River, the seventh young master of the Yorks. River was the youngest son of Zachary¡¯s second uncle. He just turned twenty¨Cthree this year. Before he entered the business industry, the public had never heard of him¨Cnot even his name was known. Jasmine had seen the nine young masters of the Yorks. However, she had only met them twice and was not close to them. At first nce, she caught sight of River but did not recognize him. She had no idea about his ce in the family. Upon hearing how Serenity addressed him, Jasmine got to know that it was the seventh young master who apanied Grandma May here. ¡°Serenity.¡± River called Serenity courteously before he greeted Jasmine, ¡°Ms. Sox.¡± Jasmine smiled at him. ¡°Mr. River.¡± River quickly said, ¡°Ms. Sox, you can call me River. Josh was Zachary¡¯s buddy. They had known each other for years. Chapter 1509 Chapter 1509 Chapter 1509 Jasmine smiled. She called River by his name so that he would not feel awkward. Deep down, she thought that Serenity¡¯s brothers¨Cinw had different temperaments. Despite that, all of them looked attractive and photogenic. They were even more handsome than the male lead in the novel she had been reading every day. ¡°Nana, you brought a lot of things. What are they?¡± Serenity ced the bags on the counter and unpacked them. ¡°Nothing much. There are plenty of supplements at home. I¡¯ve had a lot of them, and I can¡¯t take too many. I¡¯m worried that overconsuming supplements may backfire, so I sent some over. Young people like you work every day and feel exhausted. You need to improve your health.¡± Nana added, ¡°Also, there¡¯s some seafood. Your mother¨Cinw asked me to bring it for you as she This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. knows you love seafood most.¡± ¡°Now, Zachary and I are staying in the hilltop vi. There¡¯s nothing we¡¯re short of.¡± However, Tania remembered her favorite food and sent over so much food. Serenity was deeply thankful to her mother¨Cinw. ¡°Your mother¨Cinw asked me to bring it over, so I did.¡± Grandma May acted as though she was merely a delivery woman. Serenity took a chair over for Grandma May to sit on. Jasmine went to pour water for the two of them. River put down all the things. As soon as he saw his sister¨Cinw bringing a chair over, he quickly went to take it and thank her. ¡°Nana, I missed you so much.¡± Grandma May tapped Serenity¡¯s forehead. ¡°You¡¯re merely saying it for the sake of it. If you really missed me, why didn¡¯t you and Zacharye and stay in the manor to apany me?¡± ¡°The manor is too far. Why don¡¯t you stay at our ce for some time like what you did back then?¡± It was not because Serenity disliked the manor, but because the manor was quite far from the city. She had to visit her sister in the hospital every day and look after Sonny sometimes. Traveling to and fro was very inconvenient. It was much more convenient to stay in Zachary¡¯s vi. This was also why Zachary bought the vi. It was more convenient for him to go to work as well. Grandma Mayughed and said, ¡°You and Zack are now lovey¨Cdovey. Even when both of you are in a conflict at times, you both can resolve it. If I stay at your ce, I¡¯ll be the third wheel that causes disturbance.¡± In the past, she stayed with Zachary and Serenity to give her grandson an out and teach him how to make peace with Serenity. ¡°You¡¯re absolutely not a third wheel.¡± Serenity sincerely hoped that Grandma May could live with them. With her presence, the atmosphere would be much merrier. Zachary might not be as dull as he was when he just got married, but he was not any better now. If Grandma May was around, she could liven up the atmosphere. They say elders are treasures; Grandma May was the most precious treasure among the Yorks. ¡°Are you ready to work, River?¡± Serenity turned her eyes to River and asked with a grin. ording to Zachary, when they started working and entering the business industry, Grandma May would bring them to make a public appearance. The public would then know who they were and find them less mysterious. ¡°Yes,¡± River answered gently. Grandma May said, ¡°Now that you¡¯re twenty¨Cthree, it¡¯s time to start working. Later, Zack will hand you a smallpany that¡¯s going bankrupt for your training. If you can revive thepany and gain some experience, you¡¯ll be transferred back here.¡± River replied tenderly, ¡°Nana, regardless of the task Zack assigns to me, I¡¯ll treat it seriously.¡± Chapter 1510 Chapter 1510 Chapter 1510 Deep down, River was hoping that Zack would not assign the most unmanageablepany to him. York Corporation was huge and had many subsidiarypanies. There were quite a lot of small companies under its subsidiarypanies too. Some were not doing well, whereas some were about to close down. When Zachary¡¯s younger brothers first entered the workforce, it was usually either Grandma May or Zachary who assigned tasks to them. Sometimes, Zachary¡¯s brothers would directly join York. Corporation and work at the grassroots. Sometimes, they would be trained by being sent to thosepanies that were not doing well or about to close down. These kinds ofpanies were the most challenging. If his brothers could revive a smallpany and expand its territory, it would mean that they were capable of doing business. After they passed the preliminary training, Zachary would get them to handle some great subsidiary companies. Atst, he would arrange for his brothers to take over certain jobs in the family business based on the evaluation of their performance. Then, his brothers would be the leaders of their respective jobs. If his brothers did not want to take up the family business, they could start their own businesses. However, the family would not provide them with venture capital. If they wanted to borrow money to start a business, they had to sign an IOU. Furthermore, there would be an interest charge. Grandma May often told her sons and grandsons that the Yorks were rich but not themselves. The Yorks¡® wealth was umted by their ancestors, so it did not belong to the York brothers. They had to earn money on their own if they wanted to get rich. Therefore, even if the York brothers started their own businesses, they would not be able to get venture capital just like that. During their startup, they were not allowed to use the resources of York Corporation¨Cthey had to depend on themselves. Of course, the sons and grandsons educated by Grandma May had never let her down. She was content with them regardless of whether they took over the family business or started their own businesses. Grandma May hummed in acknowledgment. After Jasmine was seated, Grandma May took out. an invitation card and handed it to Jasmine. ¡°Jasmine, the Yorks will hold a party in Wiltspoon Hotel next Saturday, so I came to give you this invitation card. That night, you¡¯ll need to attend with Josh to show your support.¡± Jasmine promptly epted the invitation card and said with a smile, ¡°Grandma May, even if you didn¡¯t send an invitation card to me, I¡¯ll shamelessly attend the party.¡± ¡°Nana, whose birthday celebration is it?¡± Serenity asked. If Grandma May had note over and told Serenity this, Serenity would not know that her husband¡¯s family was going to hold a party next Saturday. ¡°River¡¯s birthday.¡± River maintained a gentle smile. ¡°Serenity, it¡¯s my birthday. Initially, I didn¡¯t want to have a party. Having a meal with my family would be enough. Nana said there aren¡¯t any parties that I can jointtely, so she organized a party for me in celebration of my birthday.¡± Serenity saw the light. This would be a party where River officially mingled with the elites. There were always parties. However, considering Grandma May¡¯s identity and status, very few people could get her to attend parties. At this point, not many families had a reason for having a party as well. Since nobody had one, Grandma May organized it for her family. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Coincidentally, it was River¡¯s birthday. She took the opportunity to organize a party for him. Some understood the reason behind it, while others would understand it in the future. ¡°I didn¡¯t know River¡¯s birthday wasing up.¡± Grandma Mayughed and said, ¡°As his sister¨Cinw, it¡¯s normal that it slipped your mind. I nearly forgot about it too. I only remembered it today and made arrangements for it.¡± This meant that it was not Serenity who did not realize her duty as Mrs. York. It was because Grandma May only made arrangements for it today. Therefore, Serenity was not informed about the birthday party beforehand. Even Zachary was unaware of it. Chapter 1511 Chapter 1511 Chapter 1511 After Grandma May exined, Serenity felt slightly better. Otherwise, Serenity would think that she did not fulfill her duty as Mrs. York. ¡°Seren, Jas, you can carry on with your work. I¡¯ll bring along River to hand out the invitation cards to a few families.¡± Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. After sitting for a while, Grandma May rose to her feet and was about to leave. Serenity and Jasmine got up as well. ¡°Nana, do you want toe over for lunch at noon?¡± ¡°No. I¡¯m treating Mr. Queen to a meal at noon. He¡¯s now in our hotel, and I had Kevin keep him company,¡± said Grandma May as she looked at Serenity with a yful gaze. Serenity got the point and answered with a smile, ¡°Alright. Do pay us a visit whenever you¡¯re free, Nana. It¡¯s best that youe over and stay with Zachary and I. It¡¯s convenient.¡± When she uttered the word ¡°convenient¡°, she shot a look at Old Mrs. York. Grandma May understood tacitly and replied, ¡°After River¡¯s birthday, I¡¯ll move to your ce. If Zack doesn¡¯t agree, you need to speak up for me. Well, it¡¯s been a long while since Ist mocked Zack. I miss. mocking him.¡± Everyone burst intoughter. ¡°Serenity, Ms. Sox, Nana and I will take our leave.¡± While smiling, River wanted to hold Nana, yet she pushed his hand away. ¡°I¡¯m not so old to the extent that I need you to hold me. When that happens, I¡¯ll soon be reunited with your grandpa.¡± At the mention of her partner who passed away years ago, Grandma May could not help but sigh and say, It feels as though I watched sunrise and sunset with your grandpa yesterday. With the blink of an eye, he has left us for nearly a decade.¡± ¡°Nana.¡± What feared the Yorks most was when Grandma May thought about herte spouse. Grandma May was soon pulled back from her drifting thoughts and said, ¡°This was in the past. I can now. face it openly. Humans have to die one day. It¡¯s a matter of time. Your grandpa went to heaven earlier than me. By the time I reach there, he¡¯ll have familiarized himself with the environment. Having him guide. me, I won¡¯t panic.¡± ¡°Nana, you¡¯ll live a long life. Grandpa would hope that you treasure your life.¡± Riverforted Nana. ¡°Nana, you have us.¡± Grandma Mayughed. ¡°Live a long life? Yes, I need to live a long life. I need to help my grandsons to look for wives.¡± River said, ¡°Nana¡­ I¡¯m still young. I¡¯m only twenty¨Cthree.¡± ¡°You¡¯re not young anymore. When your grandpa was your age, he had given birth to your eldest uncle.¡± ¡°Nana, people of your generation got married early. This era is different. Now, we advocatete marriage. and childbirth.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Nana, River is not in a rush.¡± River darted an appreciative nce at Serenity who stood up for him. Jasmine grinned and said, ¡°Grandma May, you have quite a number of grandsons. Those who are older. than River are still single. I think it¡¯s better for you to pressure them into getting married in the order of their age. It¡¯s not easy, and it takes at least two years for them to actually get married after being. pressured.¡± Except for Zachary, the rest were unmarried. It would take at least two years for Grandma May to actually make each of them get married after pressuring them. This meant that she would need to pressure them for sixteen years before her grandsons could all get married. She would be almost a centenarian by then. ¡°I¡¯m not saying River is in a rush. He¡¯s not. He still needs training. My grandson who¡¯s twenty¨Cfive is still single, that¡¯s why I briefly mentioned it. If any of them are still single at the age of twenty¨Ceight, I¡¯ll pressure them.¡± Chapter 1512 Chapter 1512 Chapter 1512 River heaved a sigh of relief. Thankfully, he was only twenty¨Cthree. Anyway, he had a few older brothers acting as his shield. One of them was twenty¨Csix and still single. If Grandma May were to pressure someone into getting married, that said brother would be the one first. ¡°Serenity, Ms. Sox, you don¡¯t have to send me. I¡¯ll bring Nana to visit the Stones.¡± River opened the car door. After Grandma May got into the car, he turned around and bade goodbye to Serenity and Jasmine. Serenity and Jasmine stood at the entrance of the bookstore and watched River and Grandma May leave. After River¡¯s car was some distance away, Jasmine said, ¡°River keeps such a low profile.¡± River¡¯s car brand was ordinary. He bought the car for $101,000 to $102,000. Compared to the cars that Zachary and the rest had, River¡¯s vehicle was just like a bicycle. Serenity responded, ¡°River is about to start working, but he hasn¡¯t proven himself. He can¡¯t overindulge in his life, so he keeps a low profile. When he¡¯s sessful in his career and holds a high position in York Corporation one day as his older brothers did, he can change his car.¡± Jasmine sighed and said, ¡°Seren, you¡¯re really lucky. You found such good inws. Your inws¡® family values are wonderful.¡± ¡°It¡¯s true that Nana loves me. Your inws are not bad either.¡± Serenity recalled how Grandma May had wanted to introduce her eldest grandson to Serenity so they could get into a rtionship. When Serenity and Zachary got married, the olddy said that she introduced her best grandson to Serenity and would not ill¨Ctreat Serenity. Nana did as she promised. Sure enough, the man Serenity married was the most outstanding man among the Yorks. ¡°Yes, my inws are good too. But I don¡¯t have so many brothers¨Cinw.¡± Jasmine was satisfied with her future inws. Jasmine returned to the bookstore with Serenity. Sheughed and said, ¡°Your brothers¨Cinw are all good- looking. I was thinking when all nine young masters of the Yorks show up at your wedding, it¡¯s going to look like a male beauty pageant.¡± Serenity grinned and said, ¡°The Yorks have good genes. The men have good looks and marry good- looking wives. Considering that the couples look good, how bad can their children get?¡± After some thought, Jasmine felt that it made sense. ¡°When Zachary and you have a child, it must be either a handsome boy or a pretty girl.¡± ¡°The son should look like him, whereas the daughter should look like me.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°I heard it¡¯s better for the son to look like the mother and the daughter to look like the father.¡± At the thought of the Yorks¡® family values, Jasmine added, ¡°Regardless of who the child looks like, he or she will be extraordinary.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not ambitious. If I have a child, all I want is for him or her to be safe and healthy. Other matters are secondary.¡± Being safe and healthy mattered most. With that, Serenity said with a self¨Cdeprecatingugh, ¡°I don¡¯t even have a child. It¡¯s too early to talk about these things.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Knowing her concern, Jasmine quicklyforted her. ¡°Your wedding hasn¡¯t been held yet, so there¡¯s no need to rush into having a child. What Zachary said to the public is that you both will enjoy your moments as husband and wife first. I think so too. Josh and I aren¡¯t nning to have a child in the first two years of our marriage.¡± ¡°We should enjoy being pampered by our beloved husbands. If we give birth to a child too early, the love. will be divided. I won¡¯t be able to enjoy undivided love from Josh all by myself. Jasmine chuckled. ¡°I really enjoy Josh¡¯s entire love for me.¡± Once Jasmine had a child, Josh would still prioritize her. Even so, he would definitely love the child as well. Jasmine would feel that she could not have undivided love from him. Chapter 1513 Chapter 1513 Chapter 1513 1/2 Serenity was amused by Jasmine¡¯s statement. ¡°You¡¯ll actually feel jealous of your child.¡± Jasmine said in a self¨Crighteous manner, ¡°Josh is my man. How can I not feel jealous when other people grab his attention, even if they¡¯re my children? My children will be pampered by their other halves in the future, so they can¡¯t share Josh¡¯s love with me.¡± ¡°Perhaps Mr. Bucham is worried that he¡¯ll be jealous of his children.¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°My husband is definitely going to be jealous of my child. He¡¯s an overbearing person. On the outside, he looks magnanimous, but he¡¯s actually narrow¨Cminded and overbearing.¡± ¡°Seren, I feel that you¡¯re now publicly disying your affection with Zachary.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t have to publicly disy our affection. You and Mr. Bucham are lovey¨Cdovey. Jas, you¡¯ll be staying at the store today, won¡¯t you?¡± ¡°Mhm.¡± Jasmine then asked, ¡°Do you have anything to take care of? You can carry on with your work. I can watch over the store.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll head to Spring Blossoms and rush back before half past eleven¡± ¡°Go ahead. Look around and see if you can buy two housents that are pleasing to the eye to be put in our store.¡± Serenity instinctively said, ¡°The nts in our store are growing well. You don¡¯t need to buy any more housents.¡± ¡°Buy some sulent nts.¡± ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll help you buy some.¡± Serenity took her car key and walked out of the bookstore. She said to Harry, who was strolling around. outside, ¡°I¡¯m heading to Spring Blossoms. You don¡¯t have toe along.¡± ¡°Alright, Missus.¡± Harry knew that his colleague would be protecting Serenity in secret. Even if he did not follow Serenity, her safety would be assured. What was more, Serenity was nimble. Currently, no one had the audacity to harm Serenity. Harming Serenity would mean turning against many wealthy families. Serenity went to Spring Blossoms but did not see Camryn there. ¡°Haven¡¯t your boss returned?¡± Serenity asked a shop assistant who was pruning a rose. ¡°Ms. Camryn came back to stock products. After that, she received a call from a regr customer who wanted a bouquet of flowers, so she personally sent the bouquet over.¡± ¡°When will she be back?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not sure. Mrs. York, why don¡¯t you go home first? Once Ms. Camryn is back, I¡¯ll get her to call you.¡± Chapter 1513 This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. 2/2 Serenity said, ¡°Camryn usually doesn¡¯t call me back after she returns. Her phone has always been turned off recently.¡± The shop assistant responded, ¡°Mrs. York, please leave your contact details. Once Ms. Camryn is back, I¡¯ll call you. Ms. Camryn has changed her phone number, so she might not remember your number.¡± ¡°Camryn has changed her number, huh?¡± Deep down, Serenity was moaning. No wonder Callum said Camryn was always unreachable. The oue was still the same after Serenity tried to call Camryn twice. It turned out that Camryn had changed her number. In fact, Camryn was trying to escape from Callum. She did not want to be involved with him. Callum¡¯s journey to winning back his wife¡¯s heart was going to be a long one. ¡°Yes. Ms. Camryn has recently changed her number.¡± Serenity uttered an ¡°oh¡± as she gave some thought before leaving her contact details with the shop assistant. She then left Spring Blossoms. Chapter 1514 Chapter 1514 Chapter 1514 Serenity called Callum. When Callum picked up the call, she said, ¡°Callum, Camryn has changed her number. I went to her flower shop twice this morning but didn¡¯t see her. Have you seen her?¡± Callum answered, ¡°I¡¯m waiting for her at Beans and Cream to send me flowers.¡± He had no idea what Camryn¡¯s new number was as the shop assistant refused to tell him. He had no choice but to recall the number for Spring Blossoms. Then, he got the store manager of Beans and Cream to phone Spring Blossoms to have Camryn send the flowers over. He would only be able to see her by doing so.. ¡°Is Camryn going there alone?¡± ¡°Another worker is sending her over by an electric scooter. Thank you, Serenity.¡± Although Serenity had not been able to see Camryn and speak up for Callum in front of her, she had visited Spring Blossoms twice in the morning. This touched Callum and made him feel that Serenity was concerned about his matter. ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. We¡¯re family. When you see her, don¡¯t frighten her again.¡± ¡°Serenity, I deeply regretted it. I won¡¯t repeat that mistake anymore.¡± He kissed Camryn without having captured her heart. That offended and frightened her. Callum kept ming himself for not being able to hold back his urge. Serenity became at ease. She ended the call and drove directly to the bookstore. Meanwhile, Grandma May visited the Marshalls with River. After delivering them an invitation card, she visited the Stones since both their houses were not far away from each other. When Grandma May visited the Stones, Remy was at the Stones¡® ce since he was their new neighbor. It seemed that he was nning to sponge food off them. Upon hearing that Grandma May and River were here, Mr. and Mrs. Stone came out to wee them. personally. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you inform me beforeing? Let me pick you up.¡± After Grandma May got out of the car. Mrs. Stone went forward to hold her. With a smile, sheined that Grandma May did not let her know about her visit beforehand. Grandma May grinned and replied, ¡°I got River to send me here, and it was convenient. I didn¡¯t need to trouble you ¡°What trouble? Being able to pick you up is our honor. This must be your seventh grandson. He¡¯s really good¨Clooking. Old Mrs. York, you¡¯re blessed. Look at your grandsons. All of them are good¨Clooking and capable. This is admirable.¡± Mrs. Stone had two sons and one daughter. Only her eldest son was responsible and outstanding, so he took over Stone Group. Her second son had no interest in doing business. As for her daughter, she had been pampered since she was young and only started a business recently. Mrs. Stone really admired Grandma May for her grandsons. Besides Mrs. Stone, other olddles admired Grandma May greatly too. ¡°They¡¯re just good¨Clooking but not as brilliant as Clive. Clive alone is better than all my grandsons.¡±Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Mrs. Stoneughed before she responded, ¡°Don¡¯t alwayspliment Clive that way. If he hears it, he¡¯ll becent.¡± ¡°I¡¯m just telling the truth. Clive and Zack are the most promising young talents in Wiltspoon. Everyone praises them.¡± ¡°Grandma May,¡± Elisa greeted her smilingly. Remy, who came out with Elisa, greeted Grandma May politely as well. The moment Grandma May caught sight of Remy, she said with a grin, ¡°Remy, you¡¯re here too.¡± Remy replied gently, ¡°I came over to see the renovation progress of my house. I knew Mrs. Stone and Elisa were at home, so I came to drink some coffee.¡± Grandma Mayughed like a fox. ¡°You¡¯ll be neighbors in the future. You should get along with each other more often. They say a near friend is better than a far¨Cdwelling kinsman. It¡¯s important that neighbors get along well.¡± ¡°You¡¯re right. This is what I thought. Whenever Ie over to see the renovation progress of my house, I¡¯ll pay Mrs. Stone a visit.¡± As Mrs. Stone listened to the conversation between Grandma May and Remy, she was secretly moaning that Remy was trying to approach her darling daughter on the pretext of wanting to develop strong neighbor rtionships. Then, he nned to capture her daughter¡¯s heart little by little. Chapter 1515 Chapter 1515 Chapter 1515 It so happened that Elisa and Remy could get along well. This made Mrs. Stone feel ambivalent about it. The message that Mrs. Stone had Zachary convey to Remy did not seem to work. Remy still often came over as a neighbor to visit the Stones. He even purposely came during mealtimes. Obviously, he wanted to sponge food off the Stones. After everyone entered the house, Elisa poured a ss of water for Grandma May. Remy helped to bring some fruit and dessert over. Grandma May noticed that Remy had be familiar with the surroundings of the Stones¡® house. What a cunning kid. He even left Mrs. Stone feeling helpless. After all, he had not confessed his love to Elisa and it was normal for him to have familiarized himself with the surroundings of the Stones¡® house considering that he came over frequently. What was more, Remy was very shameless. He would turn a blind eye to Mrs. Stone¡¯s grim expression and Mr. Stone¡¯s glower. Anyhow, he would brazenlye over as long as Elisa was willing to interact with him. Among the Stones, Alice was the only one who supported Remy¡¯s idea of getting together with Elisa. Alice found Remy suitable to be Elisa¡¯s partner. It was mainly because Remy and Elisa werepatible and had manymon topics to talk about. Elisa used to be depressed when she was infatuated with Zachary. There was no response from him, and she was unable to get over him. She mustered her courage to confess her love to him and pursue him bravely. In the end, it was to no avail. When Elisa got along with Remy, Alice could always hear herugh, and Elisa¡¯s smile was always bright.. Alice had advised her husband not to stop Remy from pursuing Elisa. It was because Elisa was genuinely happy when she was together with Remy. As Elisa¡¯s sister¨Cinw, Alice did not want Elisa to get married to someone who lived far away either but all she thought about was Elisa¡¯s happiness, so why stop Elisa from marrying Remy if she was happy? Remy deliberately bought the vi beside the Stones house. He had his vi renovated based on Elisa¡¯s preference. Remy asked Elisa for advice and opinion on theyout of his garden. In fact, he wanted to design it based on her preference. ¡°Old Mrs. York, are you here today for Seren¡¯s wedding matters?¡± Mrs. Stone waited for Grandma May to finish drinking her water before asking her. She wanted to know Grandma May¡¯s objective foring over. She thought that the Yorks nned to bring forward the wedding. Now, Liberty was still in the hospital. Mrs. Stone was Serenity¡¯s aunt, so she was considered an elder. If the Yorks nned to bring forward the wedding, Grandma May could discuss it with Mrs. Stone. Belongs ? to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°It¡¯s too early for Seren to prepare for her wedding now. Anyway, I don¡¯t need to worry about it. Zack will make preparations for it on his own. He¡¯s not even ready for family support.¡± Grandma May nced at River and smiled tenderly, ¡°It¡¯s River¡¯s birthday next Saturday. I nned to hold a birthday party for him. I¡¯d like you to join us.¡± While speaking, Grandma May took out an invitation card and handed it to Mrs. Stone. ¡°Drey, this is the invitation card. Come with your family to gather with us that day. Our families hardly get together. We¡¯ll be rtives in the future. We need to interact more so we can be close.¡± Mrs. Stone took the card and said with a smile, ¡°Old Mrs. York, you¡¯re right. We need to interact more so we can be close. None of the rtives can develop close rtionships if they don¡¯t interact with each. other.¡± Grandma May then gave Remy an invitation card too. Mrs. Stone opened the invitation and took a look at it. After that, she said to Grandma May, ¡°Alice is probably the only one in our family who won¡¯t be joining the party. She¡¯s experiencing serious reactions to pregnancy, and she feels sleepy easily. Except for Alice, all of us will attend.¡± She turned her eyes to River and said gently, ¡°Congrattions, River.¡± River grasped the significance of her message. Simrly, he smiled gently at her. ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Stone.¡± Chapter 1516 Chapter 1516 Chapter 1516 ¡°Do you still get morning sickness, Ally? You¡¯re three months along, right?¡± Old Mrs. York asked out of concern. Alice, who was sitting nearby, answered, ¡°Yes, it¡¯s been three months. I still get morning sickness about half an hour after eating. I only feel morefortable after vomiting. My mom said I might have to deal. with morning sickness until I give birth.¡± Although Alice had terrible morning sickness and felt awful every time she vomited, it did not stop her from loving the baby in her womb. She would be able to feel fetal movement after some time.. When Alice hit three months, she went to the hospital for a checkup and ultrasound scan. She saw the doctor¡¯s report. The doctor said her baby¡¯s fetal movement was ideal. However, she could not feel the movements as they were still subtle. ording to books, fetal movements could be felt after sixteen weeks. As the fetus grew, the movements would be more detectable. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Back then, Clive had wanted her to abort the child. However, upon getting the ultrasound report three monthster, he kept staring at it. Although he did not understand the report, he could not bear to let it go. Alice knew that Clive was looking forward to the child. He was simply worried sick about her morning. sickness that he desperately wanted her to get an abortion. Luckily, he did not suggest getting an abortion anymore after everyone¡¯s persuasion. Whenever Clive saw her vomiting her guts out, he would be concerned about her while scolding the baby. in her womb. He would say, ¡°I¡¯ll spank your little butt after you¡¯re out, little one. Look how much you¡¯re torturing your mother.¡± Alice touched her belly. Grandma May said, ¡°Nothing can be done about morning sickness. Some people do continue having it until they give birth. I remember Tania vomiting badly when she had Kevin. It carried on until she gave birth. She didn¡¯t have morning sickness at all when she was pregnant with Zack and Peter. It only happened when she was pregnant with Kevin. ¡°Tania even thought her third child would be a daughter because of the different reactions. However, it was still a son in the end.¡± Hearing those words, Alice smiled and said, ¡°I guess I¡¯ll be having morning sickness until my due date too.¡± ¡°Being a mom isn¡¯t easy.¡± Grandma May sighed. ¡°You can¡¯t let yourself go hungry even if you vomit, Ally I think you got thinner. Fetuses require increasingly more nutrients after they¡¯re three months old. If you don¡¯t eat, the baby will absorb nutrients from the mother¡¯s body. You¡¯ll get even skinnier.¡± Mrs. Stone chimed in, ¡°Alice doesn¡¯t vomit much if she takes soup. I¡¯ve been asking her to have more soup every meal.¡± Alice said, ¡°I¡¯ll eat, Grandma May. I do vomit a lot, but I have a good appetite. I crave everything.¡± Grandma May nodded. ¡°That¡¯s great.¡± A maid walked over and said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°The food is served, madame.¡± Mrs. Stone nodded. The maid retreated. ¡°Let¡¯s have our meal first, Old Mrs. York.¡± Grandma May did not refuse. She said with a smile, ¡°River and I will be getting a free meal here then.¡± Mr. and Mrs. Stone smiled. ¡°You honor us by staying for a meal, Old Mrs. York.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t talk about honor. We¡¯re rtives now and will interact with each other a lot. You two must have. lots of free time as you¡¯re retired and staying home. Doe and visit us often. My sons and daughters¨Cin w have also retired. They¡¯re bored at home. ¡°You¡¯re peers and can get along with each other well. You may invite them whenever there are events.¡± Mrs. Stone nodded. ¡°I¡¯ll go over and y poker with them soon. Your three daughters¨Cinw and I make. up a good number of yers.¡± Grandma May grinned. ¡°I haven¡¯t yed poker in a long time.¡° Chapter 1517 Chapter 1517 Chapter 1517 ¡°I¡¯ll y poker with you whenever I¡¯m free in the future.¡± Mrs. Stone agreed with Grandma May. Regardless of their past rtionship, they had be rtives. Rtives only got closer if everyone visited each other more. Mrs. Stone was a representative of Serenity¡¯s family. She had to support Serenity. Additionally, she needed to have more frequent interactions with the York family to prevent people from saying Serenity. was not on good terms with her inws. ¡°Okay.¡± Grandma May agreed happily. ¡°Let¡¯s go and have our meal,¡± Mrs. Stone said again. Grandma May gave a hum of approval. She only stood up after Mrs. Stone got up. Elisa was the closest person to Grandma May. She went forward to help her. Grandma May only let Elisa support her slightly. She smiled. ¡°I can still walk swiftly without a walking cane.¡± She did have a walking cane, but it was used to hit people. It could be due to her practicing martial arts and having a special identity back when she was young that made her body healthy. Her daughters¨Cinw could not even beat her when they went hiking. ¡°You won¡¯t have to use a walking cane even after eight to ten years, Grandma May.¡± Elisa smiled and added, ¡°After Serenity and the rest have children, the children will start climbing around. When that timees, you might have to use a walking cane. It¡¯ll be used to chase after those naughty kids.¡± Grandma May imagined the scene of her holding a walking cane and chasing her great¨Cgrandchildren. She beamed from ear to ear. She patted Elisa¡¯s hand. Elisa looked toward her. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°There are many good men around. Feel with your heart. You¡¯ll find that the person who suits you best is right by your side.¡± Grandma May whispered to Elisa secretly and did not let anyone hear her. After speaking, she also nced at Remy. Mrs. Stone did not invite Remy to join the meal, but he was already used to scrounging food. He did not need Mrs. Stone¡¯s invitation. He automatically followed the Stones into the dining hall. The maids did not dare refuse Remy his utensils. With Elisa present, Mrs. Stone would not show Remy that she was unhappy. She would be less than enthusiastic at most. Elisa was taken aback. Under Grandma May¡¯s hint, she nced at Remy too. The olddy patted the back of Elisa¡¯s hand again. It was not that the feisty girl of the Stone family did not match Grandma May¡¯s tastes. Instead, the girl was not to the liking of her grandsons. Therefore, Grandma May never considered Elisa when picking out granddaughters¨Cinw. Moreover, the Stones and the Yorks used to be business rivals. If it were not for Serenity suddenly bing Mrs. Stone¡¯s niece, the two families¡® rtionship would never ease. Elisa had been obsessed with Zachary for many years. After discovering Zachary and Serenity¡¯s rtionship, everyone witnessed her reaction and performance. That girl was clear¨Cheaded. Serenity sincerely hoped Elisa could find her happiness. Grandma May felt Remy was a good match for Elisa. Remy even asked Grandma May previously to rmend a suitable girl to him if she saw one. In fact, Remy did not need Grandma May worrying over him. He had his target set. ¡°Grandma May.¡± Elisa said softly, ¡°Remy and I are friends.¡± They simply got along well. The old woman smiled and did not say a word. Chapter 1518 Chapter 1518 Chapter 1518 After the meal, Grandma May and Mrs. Stone had a chat before the former left the Stones¡® residence with River. Everyone saw the grandmother and grandchild out. After River drove away with Grandma May, Mrs. Stone turned to look around. When she saw Remy, she pressed her lips together. Ultimately, she did not say anything and went back into the house. Alice had to take a nap after having a meal. Mr. Stone went to apany his wife. Elisa and Remy were the only ones left in the garden ¡°Do you want to go for a walk?¡± Elisa asked. He smiled gently. ¡°It¡¯s said that taking a walk after meals promotes longevity.¡± Elisa looked toward his smiling face. He gave off a gentle and elegant aura. Whenever he talked to her, he would have a gentle smile. That smile felt like the spring breeze, soft and warm. They walked out of the Stones¡® manor. In one of the rooms on the second floor, Mrs. Stone stood by the window. She watched her lovely daughter walk outside with Remy. She said to her husband with a tight expression, ¡°That Johnson boy asked Elisa to go on a walk with him again.¡± Mr. Stone walked over and looked outside. He saw his daughter walking with Remy side by side. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. They were in a conversation andughed as they walked. Mr. Stone tore his gaze away from them. When he saw his wife¡¯s tense face, he said, ¡°If you don¡¯t like. them talking to each other, just make it clear. You¡¯re making this displeased expression in front of me, but your daughter and the Johnson boy can¡¯t see it.¡± ¡°That boy must be blind. He alwayses over during mealtimes. He doesn¡¯t even seem to understand when I frown at him. ¡°Elisa said she¡¯s friends with him, and they get along well. It¡¯s not nice for me to scowl in front of Elisa 100.¡± Mrs. Stone used to dominate the business world alongside her husband, but she was utterly clueless. about Remy approaching her daughter. Elisa treated Remy as a friend. There was softness and a hint of passion in his gaze toward her. He doted on her a lot too. He obviously liked her, but he had not confessed. Mrs. Stone loved Elisa the most among her three children. She knew her daughter did not have many friends. If Mrs. Stone were to stop them from seeing each other, it would probably start a conflict between herself and Elisa, as Elisa thought of Remy as a friend. She decided to talk to Remy. Mrs. Stone had requested Zachary to talk to the boy, but nothing had changed. When Remy came, she would hint Remy to leave while her daughter was not paying attention. However, that boy¡¯s face was thicker than a wall. Regardless of whether she was being direct or indirect, he continued drinking and eating. As long as Elisa did not chase him away, he could stay from morning till night. It was to the point where it felt as if he wanted to take a bath at the Stones¡® manor before heading home. ¡°Actually, Remy isn¡¯t bad. He¡¯s not inferior to Zachary by much. I admire him,¡± Mr. Stone said. ¡°I know Remy is decent, but he¡¯s from Annenburg. It¡¯s so far away. We only have one daughter. I can¡¯t bear Elisa marrying off to a faraway ce.¡± Mrs. Stone was fixated on that. Mr. Stone could not bear his daughter being married off to a distant ce too. ¡°The new house Remy bought is right beside ours¡­¡± Mrs. Stone red at her husband. ¡°Are you thinking of giving your permission? Yes, he did buy a house beside ours. He lives in Wiltspoon long¨Cterm too. However, who can guarantee he won¡¯t bring Elisa back to FC Manor after marrying her? ¡°Maybe he just bought that vi to coax us into agreeing to Elisa marrying him. Will we be able to decide where he brings Elisa after she marries him?¡± Mr. Stone said, ¡°You should talk to Remy about that.¡± ¡°Clive came back today. We can get Clive to find some time to go to Remy¡¯spany and chat with him so that Elisa doesn¡¯t find out.¡± Mrs. Stone did not want her daughter to know that their family did not ept Remy. Chapter 1519 Chapter 1519 Chapter 1519 Elisa had no clue that her family was worried about her being taken away by Remy. After she and Remy left the vi, they walked slowly along the concrete road. Usually, Elisa would enter and exit the vi in a car. She had never admired the scenery around the vi properly before. ¡°After living here for so many years, I just found out that the scenery here is quite pretty. The greenery is great, and there are many benches by the road for people to sit and rest if they¡¯re tired. There are also gazebos built within certain distances of each other.¡± There was a garden upon entering the vast area of the vis. It was filled with lush green trees. It also had fitness equipment and a children¡¯s yground. The Stones had bought a few smaller vis and connected them to build a bigger vi. They had a complete range of sports and entertainment facilities. Therefore, Elisa rarely walked around the garden in the estate area. In her own words, she simply nced at the passing scenery when she exited and entered her vi in the car. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°The environment here is great, so I quickly bought your neighbor¡¯s house when I knew it was going on sale. Besides the surroundings, the security here is excellent, and the area is spacious. Although it¡¯s pre- owned, I think it¡¯s worth it.¡± Remy talked as he walked. It felt as if he had picked up a treasure when he bought the pre¨Cowned house. To him, it was indeed a steal. That was because he was aiming for Elisa. ¡°You did get lucky buying the vi beside my family¡¯s. That vi takes up a wide area. Our family wanted. to buy it too, but you snatched it up too quickly.¡± While walking, Elisa smiled and said, ¡°When my brother found out that the house was sold, he was surprised that there was someone quicker than us. I thought about who it could be, but youpletely did not cross my mind. You have an excellent eye for things, Remy. Buying that vi is definitely not a loss. ¡°You even hired someone to bless the house. After moving in, your work will surely sail smoothly. The branch of FC & Co. here might even develop into a mega¨Ccorporation. ¡°The person you like will definitely adore the huge vi you prepared for her too.¡± Remy had asked Elisa¡¯s opinions on his refurbishing ns for the vi. She did not hold back and discussed it with him. In the end, a refurbishing n that everyone agreed on was used. Elisa thought she had sophisticated tastes and that as long as she approved of it, Remy¡¯s crush would. feel the same as well. ¡°Mhm, I hope she¡¯ll like it.¡± Elisa turned to look at him. She said with a smile, ¡°Remy, we know each other so well now. I truly treat you as a close guy friend. Be honest with me. Who¡¯s the girl you like? I¡¯m quite curious about what the girl you fell for looks like.¡± Remy stopped and met her gaze. He was still smiling warmly. ¡°Do you really want to know?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve wanted to know since ages ago. You¡¯re the one who refused to tell me. ¡°You made it so mysterious. I went through all the daughters of wealthy families that I know of, but I can¡¯t make a guess. You smile at everyone during banquets. It¡¯s difficult to guess the answer through your attitude toward others.¡± Remyughed. ¡°Let¡¯s sit there and have a slow chat.¡± Elisa had no objections. They went to the stone bench Remy spoke of and sat down. The ornamental trees there had luxuriant foliage and provided some shade. Remy took out the packet of tissue he had brought with him. He used the tissue and wiped the stone bench clean before letting Elisa sit on it. Seeing his actions, she praised him, ¡°Remy, you¡¯re really attentive and considerate. The girl who¡¯ll have your love is really fortunate. She¡¯ll gain the envy of many when she marries you, just like Zachary and Serenity. ¡°We¡¯re neighbors. Please stay away from me when you husband and wife are being lovey¨Cdovey. Don¡¯t upset a singledy like me.¡± Remy smiled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Even if I upset someone, it¡¯ll never be you.¡± Chapter 1520 Chapter 1520 Chapter 1520 Elisa sat on the bench. ¡°That¡¯s great. I can¡¯t stand the provocation from seeing you people being lovey- dovey now. I feel jealous every time I see Serenity and Jasmine.¡± ¡°Elisa, you don¡¯t have to be envious of them. You¡¯ll be as happy as they are in the future.¡± ¡°Who can be certain about the future? However, if I were to be unhappy, I wouldn¡¯tpromise. If my future husband doesn¡¯t treat me well, I¡¯ll divorce him and return to my family. My two brothers can support me for the rest of my life.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. The confidence of a married woman came from her family¡¯s support. Elisa felt that her family was very supportive. ¡°That won¡¯t happen. Your inws will be great people.¡± Remy felt the elders in his family were nice. No one would make things difficult for their daughter¨Cinw. ¡°Let¡¯s stop talking about me. Tell me. Who¡¯s thedy on your mind? It must be someone from Wiltspoon, right? Did you buy a house here because of her?¡± Remy nodded and admitted it honestly. ¡°Yes. I did it for her. I wanted to be nearer to her, see her frequently, and interact with her in close proximity. She also approved my refurbishing ns for this vi after a discussion together.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Remy, are you hinting at me?¡± Remy looked toward her and said seriously, ¡°Elisa, this isn¡¯t a hint. It¡¯s you. You¡¯re the person I like. I bought this vi to be closer to your house. We¡¯ll be neighbors in the future. I¡¯ll be able to interact with you up close. ¡°If we can be together, we¡¯ll live in that vi long¨Cterm, so it¡¯ll be convenient for you to visit your family.¡± Elisa was speechless. She was surprised, yet at the same time, she did not find it shocking. During the meal, Grandma May had hinted to her about it. She was shocked at that moment. However, she also thought the olddy was right after thinking about it. Remy¡¯s actions were intentional. He kept holding off his confession. Elisa was toozy to overthink and did not dare develop feelings for him as she feared it was wishful thinking. ¡°Elisa, I like you. No, I love you.¡± Remy confessed in earnest. ¡°Can you give me an opportunity to pursue you? If you can¡¯t ept my feelings, let¡¯s remain friends. Please don¡¯t sever our friendship. It¡¯s my first time loving a girl seriously and wholeheartedly. ¡°Once a man of the Johnson family marries a wife, he¡¯ll be loyal to his family and marriage for the rest of his life. We won¡¯t betray our wives and treat love seriously. We never mess around.¡± Elisa was a person who expressed her love and hate daringly. She was not a fool. She had thought about the good things Remy had done for her. However, she did not dare take the initiative anymore after suffering a setback with Zachary. She was scared it would all be in vain again. Elisa was not afraid of failure. Nevertheless, it was demoralizing to experience failures repeatedly. Since Remy had confessed, she would consider it thoroughly. ¡°I know the Johnson family upholds great family values. In Annenburg, many young girls dream of marrying into the Johnson family to have a loving husband, not riches.¡± Remy felt relief upon hearing Elisa¡¯s words. Luckily, the rumors of his family¡¯s good values had spread all the way to Wiltspoon. Chapter 1521 Chapter 1521 Chapter 1521 ¡°Remy, allow me to consider this.¡± Neither did Elisa reject nor ept him immediately¨Cshe wanted to think about it. Remy said understandingly, ¡°I know. You can take your time. I¡¯m not in a rush. Even if you reject me, I¡¯m willing to wait for the day you can ept me.¡± Elisa smiled. ¡°I just find it too sudden.¡± ¡°I was abrupt,¡± Remy said apologetically. He thought that since everyone could already sense his feelings for Elisa, it would not be suitable to keep dying his confession. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Since Elisa asked about it, he immediately confessed. He loved her, so he had to let her know his feelings for her. Not everyone could feel others¡® love for them. Silence fell between them. After sitting for a while, Elisa stood up and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go back.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± When they headed out, they chatted andughed. However, both of them did not talk much on the way back. It was Elisa who did not wish to speak. After returning to the Stones¡® house, Remy did not linger too long and returned to his vi, which was stili under renovation. Less than five minutester, Elisa drove out in a sports car. She was heading to Wiltspoon School. It was obvious that she was going to look for her two best friends. Elisa arrived at the bookstore. However, she only saw Jasmine there. Serenity was absent. ¡°Is Serenity not in?¡± Elisa asked upon seeing only Jasmine after entering the store. ¡°She went to Spring Blossoms, but she¡¯ll probably be back soon. Are you looking for her?¡± Jasmine was about to blend some pear juice. She asked Elisa, ¡°Do you want some pear juice? I¡¯ll make a ss for you if you want some.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll have it. You guys have been giving me in water every time Ie over. It¡¯s tasteless.¡± -Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°in water is originally tasteless anyway. You should¡¯ve told us if you didn¡¯t like it. We¡¯ll add sugar to the water to make it sweeter and tastier. This is a bookstore. There¡¯s nothing. else besides books and stationery.¡± Elisa sat in front of the cashier counter. ¡°I didn¡¯t say I hated it. Please give me a ss of juice.¡± ¡°Give me a moment.¡± Jasmine took another pear out of the refrigerator. ¡°Elisa, are you looking for Serenity to talk about something? Can you tell me about it? If it¡¯s inconvenient to let me know, I¡¯ll send Serenity a message and ask her to return soon. I think she¡¯ll be back soon. anyway. She said she had to apany Zachary to a business engagement after the rush hour in the evening.¡± After a moment of silence, Elisa said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing big. I just wanted to pour my heart out to you guys. It isn¡¯t a must for Serenity to be here. You¡¯re the same too. You¡¯re my friend and someone who¡¯s experienced.¡± When Jasmine heard Elisa brought up her being experienced, she guessed it was a rtionship problem. She came out of the kitchen and asked nosily, ¡°Who confessed to you? I knew it. How could no one like such a nice girl like you? Many men will want to marry you if you wish to get married.¡± Chapter 1522 Chapter 1522 Chapter 1522 Elisaughed. She said, ¡°I¡¯m only a nice girl to you guys. Others say I¡¯m the wild daughter of a rich family. Those madames never considered having me as their daughter¨Cinw. They think they can¡¯t control a daughter¨Cinw like me ¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. She would not be suppressed. Her family was strong. The usual wealthy families truly did not consider having Elisa as a daughter¨Cinw. Men of equal social standing to her were married or younger than her. She would never consider dating a younger man. ¡°That¡¯s because they have bad eyes and blindly follow other people¡¯s opinions. They believed the rumors without trying to understand you. When Serenity and I first met you, we thought you were an honest, straightforward person.¡± Jasmine returned to the kitchen to prepare the juice. ¡°Elisa, you¡¯re really great. We¡¯re not deceiving you with sweet words just because we¡¯re friends.¡± Elisa entered the kitchen. She watched as Jasmine blended the juice. ¡°Can you tell me who confessed to you? Is it Mr. Johnson?¡± Jasmine asked. Elisa said, ¡°Did you know about it?¡± Did everyone know about Remy¡¯s feelings for her? Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°Mr. Johnson¡¯s special treatment for you was too obvious. He spent so much. money buying the pre¨Cowned vi next to your house to get closer to you. Do you think hecks a house? There are many decent vis in Wiltspoon, but he never bought any of them. Instead, he bought that second¨Chand house. Who did he do it for if not you?¡± Elisa said, ¡°So you guys found out after he bought the pre¨Cowned vi. I never thought about other things. at that time. I simply thought it was normal that Remy would buy that vi because even my family. wanted it too. ¡°He wanted to refurbish the vi and sought my opinions about refurbishing ns. I didn¡¯t overthink it and mentioned my ideas to him. He took all of my advice.¡± ¡°That¡¯s a house he bought to get closer to you. It¡¯s not surprising if he wants to live there with you in the future. Naturally, he¡¯ll listen to your suggestions and fallow your wishes.¡± After a moment of silence, Elisa asked, ¡°Jas, do you think I should ept him? He confessed to me, and I was caught off¨Cguard.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need to be hasty. You can think about it slowly. If you think you¡¯re willing to be with him and spend your remaining life together, you can ept his feelings. But for now, you should thoroughly enjoy the sweetness of being wooed by an outstanding man¡± Jasmine was in favor of Elisa and Remy dating. However, she still suggested that Elisa think it through. In their opinion, Remy was a fine man. However, no matter how great he was, Remy and Elisa had to have mutual feelings. Even if they advised Elisa to ept him, she would not be happy in the future if she simply thought of him as a friend without harboring romantic feelings. After giving it some thought, Elisa said, ¡°I think I haven¡¯t fallen in love with him, but I¡¯m happy whenever we¡¯re together. We have manymon topics. I used to think Zachary was the best guy, but I realized there were many nice guys out there after knowing Remy.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°Zachary is great, but his attention isn¡¯t on you. Remy¡¯s status may notpare to Zachary¡¯s, but he only has eyes for you, and his heart is filled with you. Their family backgrounds are equally excellent. What¡¯s rarer is that both families have a good reputation. ¡°Elisa, if mutual love can¡¯t be achieved, you should go for the man who loves you. He¡¯ll tolerate and dote on you because he loves you.¡± Elisa was deep in thought. ¡°You don¡¯t have to do anything on purpose. Just go with the flow and interact with each other the way Josh and I did. There won¡¯t be a lot of ups and downs, so it¡¯ll be calm yet blissful. Josh is very romantic. He¡¯ll prepare some romantic surprises for me often. That¡¯s enough. ¡°Not many people¡¯s romances are dramatic. We don¡¯t have to aim for an over¨Cthe¨Ctop love but a loving partner.¡± Jasmine was done blending the juice. She poured a ss of juice for Elisa. There was still enough for two more. She washed Serenity¡¯s cup and poured it for her too. Jasmine said, ¡°Serenity will be back in a jiffy. I¡¯ll prepare a cup for her too.¡± ¡°What yummy drink did you prepare for me?¡± Serenity¡¯s voice rang just after Jasmine spoke. Chapter 1523 Chapter 1523 Chapter 1523 Elisa said with a grin, ¡°Speak of the devil. ¡°Jasmine made pear juice. She said she¡¯ll make you a cup because she thinks you¡¯ll be back soon. You came in just after she spoke. Luckily, we were not talking about you behind your back.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Jasmine must¡¯ve heard my footsteps.¡± Jasmine passed the blended juice to the girls. Serenity held the juice and went to the cashier counter. After putting the juice down, she moved the small dining table she and Jasmine usually used for meals over. The three of them sat around the table with their ss of juice. ¡°Seren, did you go to Spring Blossoms to look for Ms. Newman?¡± Elisa asked, ¡°How¡¯s she now? She¡¯s amazing. She managed to sue her stepfather and mother even though she¡¯s blind.¡± ¡°I went to get flowers for Zachary. I didn¡¯t see Camryn. She was gone for the entire day. The store employee said she would tell Camryn to call me after she returned. Camryn hasn¡¯t been contacting me, and she switched phone numbers.¡± After taking a sip of juice, Serenity sighed. ¡°It¡¯s hard being a sister¨Cinw.¡± She only went to look for Camryn because she had promised Callum. That brat caused trouble and asked her for help. Elisa said with a smile. ¡°There¡¯s no helping it. Who asked Grandma May to have chosen Camryn for Callum? Speaking of which, it¡¯s Callum¡¯s job to court his wife. Why are you running errands for him?¡± ¡°He told Camryn the truth. She started avoiding him, so he came to me for help. I agreed because I thought I only had to persuade her.¡± Serenity took another sip of juice. ¡°Camryn is blind, and she doesn¡¯t have Whatsapp. I can¡¯t contact her through Whatsapp. I couldn¡¯t even find her after her phone number changed. Anyway, why do you have time toe over today, Elisa?¡± Elisa immediately blushed. Serenity was astonished that Elisa could actually blush ¡°What happened? Your face turned red.¡± Serenity went to Elisa¡¯s side right away. She asked nosily, ¡°Do you have someone you like? Who is it? Tell Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. us about him.¡± Jasmine said leisurely. ¡°Who else can it be besides Mr. Johnson?¡± Serenity said, ¡°Oh, so it¡¯s Remy. That¡¯s great. Remy is nice, and you¡¯re a good match for him, Elisa. However, you¡¯re Aunt Audrey¡¯s only daughter. She won¡¯t be able to bear you marrying someone who lives far away. It¡¯s not just her. Your entire family would hate to part with you too. ¡°Now that you¡¯ve found out, I won¡¯t keep secrets anymore. Aunt Audrey had personally requested me to ask Zachary to tell Remy that she can¡¯t bear you marrying someone who lives far away and that he should stay away from you.¡± Elisa said, ¡°It¡¯s a little far, but transportation is convenient nowadays. It¡¯ll only take two or three hours by ne. ¡°Moreover, Remy¡¯s working in Wiltspoon long¨Cterm. He has a house in Wiltspoon. He also bought the huge vi beside my family¡¯s and became our neighbor. It¡¯s not far at all.¡± Serenity and Jasmine exchanged nces andughed. Elisa might not have fallen in love with Remy yet, but she was definitely fond of him. She defended him immediately after it was mentioned that Remy lived too far away and that everyone could not bear with her leaving. ¡°Why are you guysughing? I¡¯m not putting in good words for Remy. They¡¯re all facts.¡± Elisa pinched Serenity. ¡°Remy confessed to me, but it wasn¡¯t romantic at all. There were no roses or presents. He simply said he liked me.¡± Thinking back, she had made things grand when she confessed to Zachary. Serenity teased her. ¡°I¡¯ll tell Mr. Johnson to prepare roses and gifts and confess to you again.¡± Elisa blushed again. ¡°Serenity, whose side are you on now?¡± ¡°Of course I¡¯m on your side. I¡¯m thinking about you and hoping for your happiness.¡± Serenity wished for Elisa¡¯s happiness more than anybody else. Chapter 1524 Chapter 1524 Chapter 1524 As long as Elisa did not get married, Serenity would always feel that she had stolen Elisa¡¯s happiness. Elisa liked Zachary so much, yet it was Serenity who got married to him. Therefore, Serenity sincerely hoped Elisa could quickly find her significant other. She would only feel better if Elisa found her happiness. Elisa had never med Serenity. She did not think Serenity had snatched Zachary away from her. Elisa said she and Zachary were destined to meet but not fated to be together. It had nothing to do with Serenity. It was a fact that Zachary did not love her. Even without Serenity, other women would still appear. Elisa would rather Serenity than other people. She had said smugly before that Zachary even had to acknowledge her as his cousin after being with Serenity. She was secretly happy that she could make that arrogant cold man bow down and call her his cousin. ¨C¡°Seren.¡± Elisa held Serenity¡¯s hand. ¡°Don¡¯t feel guilty for me. You didn¡¯t do me any wrong.¡± She knew how Serenity felt. ¡°I¡¯ll be happy. I won¡¯tpromise on marriage. I¡¯ll get married to a good man so I can enjoy happiness.¡± Serenity nodded. After Elisa drank the ss of juice and poured her heart out to her best friends, she knew what her choice was. She left in the evening. Meanwhile, at York Corporation, Zachary exited the office with a huge bouquet once it was time to get off work. It was the bouquet Serenity gave to him personally in the afternoon. He was a grown man and did not like flowers, but they were a gift from his wife. He would treasure it even if it were a piece of grass. After taking the elevator to the first floor, he bumped into Josh, who took another elevator down. Upon seeing Josh, Zachary hugged the bouquet closer instinctively. He was not afraid of Josh stealing. his flowers. He was simply drawing Josh¡¯s attention on purpose with his action. Josh smiled and said, ¡°Serenity cent it, right? The bouquet is beautiful.¡± Zachary maintained his cold and haughty appearance. He said, ¡°Seren gave it to me. I¡¯ll only like the flowers she gives to me. I won¡¯t even spare a nce at flowers given by other people. It¡¯s beautiful, right? I think it looks great too. ¡°Josh, I remember there¡¯s a flower vase in your office. Where did you buy it? Is there a bigger one? ¡°I want to get a bigger one than yours. It can¡¯t be helped. The bouquet my wife gave to me is too big. I have no choice but to get arger vase to fit the bouquet.¡± Joshined about his friend inwardly. It was nothing more than him receiving a bouquet from his missus, but he acted smugly about it. Zachary was acting like a teenager and not the CEO of York Corporation. Ever since he fell in love with Serenity, the steady and calm side of him disappeared. Josh thought his friend was childish. However, if Jasmine were to send a bouquet to him, he would also bring it around thepany and show off his lovey¨Cdovey rtionship. ¡°Do you This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. still need to buy a vase? You should move one of the antique vases from your house to the office and ce it in your office. Then, you can arrange the flowers Serenity gave you in that vase. What a brilliant idea!¡± Zachary nodded. ¡°Your idea isn¡¯t bad.¡± Chapter 1525 Chapter 1525 Chapter 1525 Josh said, ¡°Don¡¯t you have a business dinner tonight?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. He changed the topic. It was to prevent Zachary from talking about the flowers again. Zachary made it look as if Josh had never received flowers. ¡°I¡¯m going to pick my wife up She¡¯s apanying me tonight Josh hummed in acknowledgment ¡°I¡¯m going to take a break after working for another week It would be his and Jasmine¡¯s wedding soon Zachary said, ¡°Isn¡¯t there still half a month until the wedding day?¡± As Josh walked outside with Zachary he said, ¡°Half a month is only two weeks Can¡¯t I take a break a week in advance?¡± He could not possibly work up till the day of his wedding, right? Zachary had nothing to say about that ¡°Mr York, Mr. Bucham.¡± Everyone greeted them respectfully as they walked out. ¡°Shall we leave together?¡± Josh was walking toward Zachary¡¯s car Zachary asked him that question with raised eyebrows ¡°I have to bring my wife home to have dinner and then visit the house we¡¯ll live in after our marriage. Josh did not intend to live with his parents after the wedding He wanted to have privacy with Jasmine. His parents respected his decision. As long as he was willing to marry and bear children, it would be easy to deal with his parents. ¡°Which house are you using after the wedding?¡± Zachary asked casually. They got into his Rolls-Royce while Josh¡¯s Porsche was handed over to one of Zachary¡¯s bodyguards to be driven to the bookstore. ¡°It¡¯ll be the vi on the hilltop. The one near your house. Jasmine and Serenity are best friends, so using that vi as our love nest will make it convenient for them to meet up too.¡± Josh had always followed Zachary¡¯s footsteps in buying houses. Whenever Zachary bought a house, he would also buy one in the same location. He could scrounge free meals whenever he wanted if they lived nearby to each other. ¡°I thought that if you were changing neighborhoods, I¡¯d refurbish a house near yours for Serenity and me to move into after we get married. Since you chose the vi on the hilltop, I¡¯ll remain there I¡¯ve lived there for almost ten years and have grown attached to it anyway.¡± Zachary stayed in the vi on the hilltop often. There was no need to renovate it because he had used only the best for everything. Serenity was not a materialistic person either. However, Zachary still nned to ask her whether she had anything she wanted to change about the vi. He could make the changes ording to her wishes while there was still time. Josh said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to refurbish your vi again, right? Although you¡¯ve lived there for almost ten years, you used the best refurbishing design back then. Nothing will be out of style even after another decade. ¡°Most importantly, the renovation can¡¯t bepleted in a day or two.¡± Josh did not renovate his vi either. He rarely lived there, so he just had to decorate it. Zachary agreed. ¡°I think so too, but I¡¯ll still ask for Seren¡¯s opinions. I think the house would look presentable after a good decorating.¡± ¡°Whose house can be considered presentable if yours isn¡¯t?¡± Joshughed and said, ¡°Other people¡¯s newly renovated houses aren¡¯t even as luxurious as yours.¡± Ring, ring¡­ Chapter 1526 Chapter 1526 Chapter 1526 Zachary¡¯s cell phone started ringing. Before Zachary looked at his phone, he told Josh, ¡°It must be my wife calling. She may want to pick me up from thepany after work.¡± Josh pouted. ¡°Hey, I am doing pretty well myself. Heck, I¡¯m even having my wedding before you. You don¡¯t have to show off your love and affection, it doesn¡¯t provoke me at all¡± With a wide grin on his face, Zachary replied, ¡°I¡¯m not showing off That¡¯s just how my wife and I get along every day.¡± It was either Zachary picking Serenity up or the other way round It became the couple¡¯s daily routine. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. The moment Zachary took out his phone and realized that it was Remy calling, his ever-handsome face twitched Zachary thought it was Serenity who called. He did not expect it to be Remy With eyes as sharp as a hawk, Josh saw that it was Remy¡¯s name on Zachary¡¯s screen. Josh busted outughing. As Zachary gave him a mean re, Josh turned away and continued his gleefulughter Despite the humiliating circumstance, Zachary answered Remy¡¯s call ¡°Mr. York.¡± Zachary responded with a grunt. Remy could sense the annoyance in Zachary¡¯s voice. With a smile on his face, he apologetically said, ¡± Sorry to interrupt you from your meals.¡± ¡°I haven¡¯t taken my meal yet.¡± Zachary responded, without dropping the low voice. ¡°What do you need me for, Mr. Johnson?¡± It must have been unrted to official business. Remy would follow the standard procedure and go through the secretary first if it was official business By dialing Zachary¡¯s personal number, it would most probably be a private matter. If Remy had private issues that could trouble Zachary, it must be rted to Elisa. ¡°Oh, it¡¯s nothing urgent. It¡¯s just that I have some free time tonight, as I don¡¯t have any social activities to attend. Since you haven¡¯t eaten, I thought of inviting you to dinner. What say you?¡± With a deep voice, Zachary said, ¡°Sad to say, I have to socialize tonight. I can¡¯t make it. It¡¯s better to make an appointment with me in advance if you want to invite me for dinner next time.¡± Disappointed, Remy chuckled. ¡°That¡¯s unfortunate. When will you be free then, Mr. York? Let¡¯s have dinner together¡± ¡°Are you by chance nning to return to Annenburg, Mr Johnson? I¡¯m going to bring my wife there for a trip next week. Maybe you could invite us for dinner then if you decide to return.¡± Remy thought for a while and replied, ¡°I¡¯m not nning to return to Annenburg for now. Are you visiting Annenburg next week, Mr. York? I¡¯ll inform my brother so he¡¯ll be there to wee you when you arrive Zachary said politely, ¡°Sorry for troubling the both of you.¡± He aimed to take Serenity on a leisurely trip to rx. In hopes of building a friendship for Serenity and Jane, he also nned to give Ben and Jane a visit. ¡°It¡¯s no trouble at all, really¡± Remy smiled and added, ¡°I¡¯ll leave you to it then, Mr. York. I¡¯ll inform my brother so he can make preparations.¡± Jane was due to give birth in July. However, she was pregnant with twins, which might result in an early delivery in June. It was already April and Jane had rarely left her house. Ben did not run thepany to the fullest of his abilities, as he was always by his wife¡¯s side, awaiting the arrival of his two children. Right after ending his conversation with Remy, Zachary heard a question from his friend. ¡°You¡¯re taking your wife on vacation next week?¡± ¡°Alright, this is the n. Seren will be too worried to leave while Liberty is still in the hospital. The good news is, Seren will be in the mood for a trip once Liberty is discharged next week.¡± Zachary was busy with work on recent nights, trying to tie up loose ends-only then could he take some time off to apany his wife on a trip as a diversion, all to relieve Serenity¡¯s stress and to keep her from worrying about infertility. ¡°I won¡¯t be working next week.¡± Josh reminded his friend. He feared that the matters of thepany would be relegated to him while Zachary went on a trip with his wife. Zachary nced at Josh and said with a chuckle, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, it wouldn¡¯t affect your wedding. My wife and I will be back before your big day. After all, we are good friends with both of you, not to mention we were your matchmakers. We wouldn¡¯t miss your wedding for the world Chapter 1527 Chapter 1527 Chapter 1527 ¡°The Yorks have so many men. Even if you and I aren¡¯t around, they¡¯ll be able to hold up. Besides, I¡¯m just going to be away for a few days. York Corp is a big group with mature management. Even if we¡¯re not avable for a month, thepany will be fine,¡± Zachary said to Josh. The mid-level and senior managers in thepany were not raised for nothing. Josh breathed a sigh of relief and chuckled as he said, ¡°As long as you¡¯re not asking me to stay in the office to work my butt off for you.¡± Zachary said with amusement, ¡°I¡¯m not an exploiter Look how nervous you are I¡¯ve never ordered you around, have 1?¡± ¡°No, no, I¡¯ve always volunteered to be ordered about by you.¡± Zachary was lost for words. Josh chuckled and said, ¡°I should be d to have worked hard for you After finding your happiness, you didn¡¯t forget about me and matched Jasmine to me. We¡¯re good friends and brothers.¡± ¡°You¡¯re as sweet as ever with your words. No wonder Ms. Sox fell for you and agreed to marry you so quickly,¡± Zacharymented. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°It wasn¡¯t quick. We got together for half a year before getting married, okay? Is that fast? I can¡¯t wait to have a simple and good life with her.¡± Josh and Jasmine had gotten their marriage license, but they had not slept together. Jasmine was still living with her family. Although Josh wanted it very badly, he did not dare sleep in her parent¡¯s house. Luckily, the wedding was not far away. Once the wedding was over, Josh would be able to sleep with Jasmine however he wanted. Zachary and Josh chatted and soon arrived at Wiltspoon School. School was over long ago, but there were still many vehicles in front of the school. The students¡¯ parents who attended the morning session were here to pick up their children. There were many cars and people. Zachary¡¯s fleet discreetly avoided the traffic flow and parked in the most remote ce so as not to easily attract everyone¡¯s attention. Seeing that there were still so many people, Zachary instructed his bodyguards, ¡°Wait in the cars, and don¡¯t follow us. There are too many people. We¡¯ll attract too much attention if you follow us.¡± This was a school, so Zachary did not want to be too high-profile and attract the students¡¯ attention. Zachary and Josh got off together. The two of them walked toward the bookstore. Zachary was holding a bouquet at first. He remembered about it after taking a few steps and immediately turned back to put it back in the car. Josh waited for him in the same spot When Zachary returned, Josh teased him, ¡°Why don¡¯t you hold the bouquet and wave it around? Many people are watching now¡± ¡°It¡¯s easy to do that but this isn¡¯t the right ce¡± The audience here was different Zachary felt that it was best to keep a low profile in front of students The best would be that people did not know who he was. That said, it was quite difficult. Zachary and Serenity¡¯s love story had long been hot news in Wiltspoon. Almost everyone in Wiltspoon knew about them. Students were often on their mobiles nowadays and knew more than adults. Zachary¡¯s identity was open and transparent to the students who often visited the bookstore. Fortunately, Zachary was too serious and cold. Every time he showed up in the bookstore, he gave the students the feeling that he was stricter than their dean. As such, none of the female students fancied Zachary. Instead, everyone sympathized with Serenity for marrying such a grim-looking and indifferent man. Zachary would probably be speechless if knew that was how the students viewed his marriage with Serenity. He was well aware that the bookstore¡¯s business would be bad if he showed up. Zachary was sensible and stood at the door. He only went in when the students left after buying what they wanted. Josh was sweeter than Zachary and liked to smile. Since he was more approachable, he directly went into the store to help. Jasmine was happy to see Josh. She smiled and asked, ¡°Why are you here?¡± ¡°I¡¯m here to pick you up from work so we can go home for dinner. We can also drop by our newlywed house on the way.¡± Chapter 1528 Chapter 1528 Chapter 1528 Josh answered softly and whispered in Jasmine¡¯s ear, ¡°I came with Zachary He knows he looks too cold and will scare your little customers away, so he¡¯s standing guard in front of the store. He¡¯s more useful than a surveince camera.¡± Jasmine chuckled Serenity heard the young couple¡¯s conversation and knew her man was here too. She looked out and saw Zachary¡¯s tall and robust body. Zachary and Josh came after work. It was past the busiest time in the store The former stood in front of the store for a few minutes and then entered ¡°Seren, can we go now?¡± Zachary asked his beloved wife gently Serenity looked at the time and replied to him, ¡°Soon¡± She then said to her best friend, ¡°Jas, why don¡¯t I leave first and you shut the doorter before you leave?¡± Jasmine readily agreed to it ¡°Sure¡± With that, Serenity went around the counter to go into the bathroom. She put on light makeup in the mirror beforeing out of the bathroom. After picking up her bag, Serenity went up to take Zachary¡¯s arm ¡°Babe, let¡¯s go.¡± Serenity waved goodbye to her best friend. Jasmine waved back at the couple and watched them leave Once they were out of sight, Jasmine retracted her gaze and said to Josh, ¡°Serenity had always been confident. She had low self-esteem for a while when she first learned about Zachary¡¯s real identity, but she quickly adjusted herself. Now, she¡¯s more confident than before.¡± ¡°She adapted to her identity as the missus of the Yorks, as well as Zachary¡¯s socialwork. She¡¯s also deeply loved by Zachary and her inws. There¡¯s no way she¡¯s not confident.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Josh had never underestimated Serenity. He also did not dare underestimate Liberty. Josh admired Liberty even more because she raised and lived with her sister at the age of fifteen. Although she lost a lot from her first marriage and had also lost herself, she was past that. The Hunt sisters were amazing. Josh did not find it surprising that his two buddies were enchanted by the sisters. ¡°So is my wife.¡± Josh did not forget topliment his wife after praising someone else¡¯s wife. Jasmine grinned ¡°I never know what it means to have low self-esteem. Anyway, help move the shelves at the entrance inside and everything in as well. We can go after that. Did you say we¡¯d be going to see our newlywed house?¡± ¡°Yep, the house we¡¯ll live in after the wedding. You haven¡¯t seen it with me yet,¡± Josh answered while walking out to help carry things inside Jasmine asked, ¡°I thought we¡¯ll live in your house after our wedding.¡± ¡°We¡¯ll definitely go home on our wedding day Once we¡¯re back from our honeymoon, we¡¯ll live in the hilltop vi. Zachary also has arge vi there You¡¯ve been there before, right? Our home is also near there, so it¡¯ll be convenient for you and Serenity to meet.¡± Jasmine responded, ¡°Oh, you have a house there too.¡± Josh had taken her to visit a few vis that belonged to him. She thought that was all, so she did not expect there to be others she had not visited. ¡°I have a lot of houses in all the major cities in the country, but I have the most in Wiltspoon. I decided to make the hilltop vi our home because it¡¯s the biggest and has the most luxurious decorations. Besides, it¡¯s also closest to Zachary¡¯s house. I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll like it. ¡°We have many houses, so I can¡¯t show you all of them at once. When we have time in the future, let¡¯s live in the different houses one by one.¡± Jasmine chuckled and said, ¡°I end up living as andy, after all¡± Chapter 1529 Chapter 1529 Chapter 1529 Joshughed and asked Jasmine. ¡°Isn¡¯t it good to be andy? I remember you said you didn¡¯t have a big dream and will be content with living as andy as your parents did ¡°Being andy is too boring. All I do is collect rent every day.¡± Jasmine replied to him. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°You can ask me to collect rent for you¡± Jasmineughed. ¡°You¡¯re andlord yourself¡± Back then, she did not want to help her parents collect rent every day so she rented this ce and opened a bookstore with Serenity to pass the time It did not matter if they made money as long as she did not need to go around collecting rent ¡°The people from our hometown found things to do to pass the time My aunt drives a Porsche to work now, which is better than her boss¡¯s car She¡¯s a cleaner and gets about three grand a month, but she does a serious job. ¡°Her boss said her car was too good, so she drove a BMW instead the next day. Her boss still thought that it was still too nice of a car, so she could only buy an electric vehicle Like me, she drives that electric vehicle every day to be paid about three grand a month at work.¡± Joshughed so hard that his stomach hurt. This is the portrait of the life of Wiltspoonians Families had several houses for rent. Those who were as amazing as Jasmine¡¯s family had many buildings and stores for rent The monthly rent was something that could not even be earned by many people in a lifetime. After putting away the shelves in front of the store, Jasmine pushed her e-bike in and locked the store She left in Josh¡¯s car. Josh brought Jasmine to the hilltop vi. It was several hundred meters away from Zachary¡¯s house. It did not cover asrge of an area as Zachary¡¯s house did, but the decorations were not inferior at all. Josh¡¯s car entered the vi. He drove to the entrance of the house and stopped. Before getting out of the car, Jasmine saw the two rows of people standing in front of the house. There were about twenty of themprising maids, a chauffeur, and bodyguards hired by Josh to serve. Jasmine. ¡°There are so many people.¡± Jasminemented softly. ¡°There are more people here than there are in your family.¡± She remembered that her inws did not have that many servants. Josh unfastened his seatbelt and said, ¡°They¡¯re specially hired to serve you. There aren¡¯t many of them- only over twenty I can hire a few more if they¡¯re not enough. They¡¯re all experienced in their trades and can take good care of you.¡± Jasmine was speechless. How was over twenty people not a lot? Jasmine¡¯s family was also nich, but they did not hire maids. They would only hire a few part-timers to help spring clean during festivities. Big and small affairs in their family were usually handled by Jasmine¡¯s parents. Echoing her mother, if there was no housework to do, they could only live their days counting the money they had. ¡°You¡¯ve been to Wildridge Manor. The Yorks are the ones with plenty of servants. Their family splits tasks in detail, so there are nearly a thousand workers in the manor Josh felt that since he and Jasmine had just gotten married and that there were only two of them, they did not need so many attendants for the time being. Once their family had new members, he would hire a few nannies. Jasmine did not say anything else. ¡°Let¡¯s get off and meet everyone. You¡¯ll be their missus from now on.¡± Josh¡¯s parents would not move here to live with them, so he and Jasmine would be the bosses of this vi. ¡°Sir, madam.¡± After the couple got out of the car, the two rows of people standing in front of the house greeted them with respect under the butler¡¯s lead. Jasmine responded to them with a smile. ¡°Sir, madam, dinner is ready,¡± the butler said respectfully. Josh replied gently, ¡°We¡¯re not used to people serving us during dinner. You¡¯re dismissed.¡± The butler waved his hand, and the servants dispersed in an orderly manner. Only the butler was left following the couple into the house. Chapter 1530 Chapter 1530 Chapter 1530 The table in the dining room was filled with Jasmine¡¯s favorite dishes. ¡°Sir, madam, enjoy your meal ¡± After Josh and Jasmine took their seats, the butler said respectfully and excused himself. He left the opportunity to take care of Jasmine for Josh. Josh had always taken great care of Jasmine, who was also a foodie Even if they had dinner by themselves, they would enjoy their food very much. After the meal, Josh took Jasmine for a walk in the courtyard to get her familiarized with the environment. That night, the young couple stayed in the vi. In the following days, Josh picked up Jasmine after work every day and returned to their home. The happy days passed quickly Another week was over in the blink of an eye. Josh began his marriage leave. After Liberty was discharged from the hospital, Zachary brought Serenity to Annenburg for a break and a vacation as he usually did in the past. Liberty still needed home rest after being discharged. Before flying to Annenburg, Serenity asked Elisa to help control her sister, not allowing her to resume work at the store too soon. Zachary took Serenity to Annenburg to meet Jane, Iris, and the others. They did not stay there for long. After all, they had to rush back to attend Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding. By the end of April, the weather was pleasant in Wiltspoon. It was neither too cold nor too hot. The weather was great on Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding day. The sun was high up in the sky. Camryn, who had been avoiding Callum for half a month, finally showed up on the wedding day. She was friends with Serenity and Jasmine. Now that Jasmine was getting married, it would not be right if she did not show up. Jasmine tried hard to ask Camryn to be her bridesmaid but was rejected. Camryn could not see, so she felt that it would not be good for others to take care of her as a bridesmaid In the end, Jasmine¡¯s bridesmaids were made up of distinguisheddies led by Elisa and Tasha. On the other hand, Josh¡¯s groomsmen were not short of amazing too. Apart from Zachary, the other young men. of the Yorks were the groomsmen. There were also Remy, Duncan, and some young men of the Buchams. All in all, the groomsmen team was awesome, and all of them were handsome. The Johnsons from Annenburg arranged for other members of the family toe over. Ben did not attend the wedding to congratte the couple because Jane¡¯s baby bump was getting too big. He was worried, so he arranged for his younger brothers to attend the wedding instead, bearing generous gifts Many bigwigs from. other rities attended the wedding with their wives. in short, Josh and atmes wedding shook the whole of Wiltspoon. Camryn deliberately hid in a corner during the wedding dinner Another person who was hiding on purpose was Liberty. The two of them coincidentally hid together. ¡°Liberty, why are you sitting here too?¡± Camryn asked with concern. She was hiding in the corner because she was avoiding Callum. She quietly listened to the sounds of merriment around her. However, why was Liberty hiding? ¡°My body has just recovered, and I¡¯m not used to the liveliness yet, so I¡¯m sitting somewhere further and quiet.¡± In fact, Liberty could not stand the passionate gaze of Duncan¡¯s pursuit. As long as Duncan looked at Liberty, Mrs. Lewis would re at her and keep an eye on her. Mrs. Lewis did everything to stop Duncan froming over to talk to Liberty and desperately pushed Lily toward him. Duncan had not confessed his feelings, but Liberty knew what he was thinking. Liberty had also calmly thought about it. She did not have feelings for Duncan and had never thought about it. She felt wronged to be guarded against by Mrs. Lewis. Camryn said gently, ¡°Then I¡¯ll sit here with you and be yourpany, Liberty.¡±Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Chapter 1531 Chapter 1531 Chapter 1531 Liberty saw Callum walking over. She immediately said, ¡°Ms. Newman, I¡¯m going to the bathroom.¡± Before Camryn could reply to her, she hurriedly slipped away to make room for Callum. Liberty knew Callum was pursuing Camryn, but Camryn was not willing to ept him and had avoided him for half a month. As a result, Serenity had to go to Spring Blossoms countless times. ¡°Liberty, I want to go to the bathroom too. Wait for me.¡± Camryn found her white cane and wanted to go to the bathroom with Liberty but did not get any response. ¡°Liberty?¡± ¡°Liberty walked away.¡± Callum¡¯s low voice was heard. Camryn subconsciously squeezed her white cane. She regained her normal state right away. ¡°Mr. Callum.¡± She greeted Callum politely and apologized, ¡°Excuse me.¡± Callum reached out to grab her wrist. ¡°Camryn!¡± He called out in a low and hoarse voice. ¡°How long are you going to avoid me?¡± Camryn withdrew her hand and answered calmly, ¡°Mr. Callum, I¡¯m not avoiding you. I¡¯ve been too busy lately.¡± She had been busy arguing with her two aunts and stabilizing the morale of Newman Enterprise. She did not have time to think about her and Callum indeed. Camryn¡¯s aunts wanted to snatch Newman Enterprise away based on the fact that she could not see and did not know how to do business; the enterprise would fail if left with her. Camryn had two cousins who worked at the enterprise and were also valued by her stepfather, but their positions in thepany were still lower than that of Dalton. Since Camryn had Dalton¡¯s help, she had the upper hand for now. ¡°You are I go to your flower shop every day to look for you, but you¡¯re not there. It¡¯s the same when my sister-inw goes to find you as well, and you never called her. You changed your phone number and stayed far away¡± Callum stared deadly at her 1 know you¡¯re busy-busy being together with Mr Mitchell, right?¡± Callum said that out of jealousy Camryn had exined that she and Dalton were like siblings. but she trusted him so much and were so was seatrus M un did puuduta uto me? good She had not seen Callum for half a month. If he still knew that she was with Dalton, it could only mean that he looked into her using his power as the second son of the Yorks. ¡°I just care about you and want to know what you¡¯re doing every day.¡± ¡°What can I do? What I do is what I should do, and what I should do is my personal matter. It has nothing to do with you. Mr. Callum, please excuse me.¡± Camryn did not want to argue with Callum at Jasmine¡¯s wedding. She suppressed her anger and excused herself. She walked past him and slowly went forward. Callum turned around and watched her leave. He strode forward to catch up to her after a moment of silence. Camryn quickened her pace when she heard his footsteps. Unfortunately, she was in an unfamiliar environment and could not see. Speeding up would only cause her to trip. ¡°Be careful.¡± Callum reached out his long arms and caught her when she was falling forward. He saved her from hitting the ground. Camryn hurriedly pushed Callum away before she even stood still. Callum was slightly irritated. ¡°Are you so afraid of me? I just caught you and didn¡¯t take advantage of you. Did you have to push me away in such a hurry?¡± Camryn took a few steps back and kept her distance. She regained her calmness, making Callum feel angry, hateful, and helpless. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t call me that-call me Callum!¡± Camryn pursed her lips. Callum was a little frustrated. He said, ¡°I¡¯ll take you to the bathroom.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°I¡¯m a female.¡± Camryn could not enter the bathroom with him. Callum responded with a dark face, ¡°I¡¯ll only walk you to the entrance and won¡¯t follow you in I still care about my image¡± Chapter 1532 Chapter 1532 Chapter 1532 Camryn was embarrassed. Callum took a few deep breaths and eased his tone as he said, ¡°Hand me the end of your cane, and I¡¯ll lead you there. We¡¯ll take fewer detours so you won¡¯t bump into other people.¡± There were too many people at the wedding dinner. Camryn could not see, so she could easily bump into others. ¡°Mr. Cal-¡± ¡°Call me Callum!¡± Camryn pursed her lips again and said, ¡°Tell me the route. I can walk there by myself.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll count to three. If you don¡¯t hand me the end of your cane, I¡¯ll carry you there!¡± Camryn was speechless. She reached out the end of her cane to Callum to not anger him. With that, Callum grabbed the cane. Nheless, he slid his hand further to the middle to shorten the distance between him and Camryn. ¡°Follow me,¡± Callum said in a low voice. He took Camryn to the bathroom. ¡°I¡¯ll wait for you at the door. If you don¡¯te out in half an hour, I¡¯ll go in.¡± Camryn asked, ¡°Aren¡¯t you afraid of being embarrassed?¡± ¡°You¡¯re not afraid of that, so why should I? I¡¯m super thick-skinned.¡± Camryn did not say more and slowly walked to the restroom. She only went in to wash her face and clear her head. She was not good enough for Callum! Even if Old Mrs. York chose her¡­. Callum could find a better woman. If Camryn was not blind, she could consider him. After staying in the bathroom for a few minutes, someone entered. ¡°Is that man at the door the second son of the Yorks? Why is he standing there?¡± ¡°He¡¯s probably waiting for someone.¡± ¡°The men of the Yorks showed up together. They¡¯re so handsome.¡± ¡°Mr. Bucham¡¯s groomsmen areparable to male celebrities.¡± Camryn heard the discussion among some women. She knew Callum was still waiting outside. She sighed internally and washed her hands again. Afterward, she put on her sunsses and walked out with her cane as though nothing happened. When she moved, the women who entered the bathroom stopped talking and watched her leave in silence. Callum thought Camryn would hide inside for at least half an hour. He went forward when he saw her He quietly took one end of her cane and led her away. As he walked, he asked Camryn, ¡°Are you full?¡± ¡°Mhm.¡± Callum did not say anything else. Camryn kept silent. She let him lead her but eventually felt that something was wrong. ¡°Where are you taking me?¡± Camryn asked as she stopped in her tracks. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. ¡°Since you¡¯re full, I¡¯ll send you home. Then, we¡¯ll have a good talk.¡± Callum had almost led Camryn out of the hotel when she noticed that something was wrong. Camryn refused, ¡°No, my driver wille and pick me up. I don¡¯t need to trouble you.¡± Callum stared at her and asked her in a threatening tone, ¡°Are you going to follow me, or should I knock you out and carry you away?¡± Camryn was speechless. People said that the men of the Yorks were domineering. She thought that only Zachary was like that, but it turned out that Callum had that side to him too. Chapter 1533 Chapter 1533 Chapter 1533 ¡°I¡¯ll count to three. If you can¡¯t make a decision, I¡¯ll carry you away.¡± Seeing that Camryn still refused topromise, Callum threatened her again. He started counting. Camryn was worried that Callum would actually knock her out and carry her away. She quickly interrupted him when he counted to two and said, ¡°Then please send me home. That said, you must¡¯ve drunk a lot. Don¡¯t drive after drinking.¡± Callum curled his lips into a smile and said, ¡°I purposely stayed away from any alcohol so I could take you home.¡± He was the most irresponsible groomsman for once. The other groomsmen more or less had drinks on behalf of Josh. Callum was the only one who did not drink. Camryn had nothing more to say. Soon, a warm and thick hand held her hand. Camryn wanted to shake it off. ¡°The hotel is full of people, and your cane can easily poke someone. This is good.¡± Callum did not give her the chance to shake him off. Instead, he took her cane away and held her hand as they walked.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Camryn could not fight against the domineering second young master of the Yorks. She looked indifferent and let Callum lead her. Callum stopped after walking for a while. Camryn guessed that they had reached his car. Following that, she heard the sound of a car being unlocked. After pulling open the door to the passenger seat, Callum helped Camryn into the car. Once she was settled in, he helped her put on her seat belt. In fact, Callum was quite considerate apart from being overbearing. Camryn sensed his thoughtfulness and could not help but think of her shorings. Callum said he wanted to talk. In that case, they would talk. It was true that avoiding him could not solve the problem¨CCamryn suddenly figured this out. Soon enough, Callum returned to the driver¡¯s seat and did not forget to call his big brother When Zachary answered the phone, Callum said, ¡°Zack, I¡¯m sending Camryn home. Help me inform Josh.¡± Callum would note back to the wedding dinner once he left. Zachary responded to him and did not say much. After Zachary hung up the phone, Serenity asked him, ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± ¡°It was Callum. He left first to send Ms. Newman home.¡± Zachary took a sip of his drink and said to his beloved wife, ¡°You don¡¯t need to worry about him anymore. He can handle it.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. It¡¯ll be good if he can take this opportunity to talk things out with Camryn.¡± Last week was River¡¯s birthday party. The Yorks had invited Camryn, but she gave an excuse and turned it down. She did not show up at the party and only asked someone to deliver River¡¯s gift.. Callum initially wanted to use River¡¯s birthday party to know what was on Camryn¡¯s mind, but he failed. This time, Camryn could not turn down Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding invitation. This gave Callum an opportunity. Outside the hotel, Callum was not in a hurry to drive off after he hung up the phone. He turned his head to look at Camryn for a while before he started the engine. Camryn did not say a word along the way. Neither she nor Callum spoke. Chapter 1534 Chapter 1534 Chapter 1534 Soon after, Callum and Camryn arrived at the Newmans¡¯ vi. The vi was brightly lit, and several cars were parked in front as well as in the courtyard. There was even a van. People kept moving things from the van into the house. Callum stopped the car and asked Camryn, ¡°Are you moving? Or are you moving things back from somewhere else?¡± ¡°What?¡± Camryn had not gotten out of the car yet. The car door and windows were tightly shut, so she could not hear the movements in front of the vi. She was startled when she heard Callum¡¯s questions. Callum understood when he saw her reaction. He said, ¡°A few cars are parked in front of your house, and there¡¯s also a van in the courtyard. People are moving things from the van into your house. They look like movers to me. Did you agree to let someone move into your house?¡± ¡°No.¡± Camryn unfastened her seat belt. She took her cane and pushed the door open to get out. ¡°If I¡¯m not mistaken, my elder aunts are moving in.¡± Apart from her little aunt who had a distant marriage, her two elder aunts did not move far after getting married. Now that Camryn¡¯s mom and stepdad were in prison, they wanted to snatch Newman Enterprise and this huge vi for themselves. ¡°I think they¡¯re moving in to forcibly upy your house and snatch yourpany away.¡± Callum had looked into Camryn¡¯s recent movements and knew two of her aunts were back to fight for the family¡¯s assets. Of course, the two women made it sound very nice, saying they wanted to help Trenton protect their family business. On the contrary, Trenton trusted her sister more than his aunts. He was not aware of all these yet. Trenton only came home once a month. The day he came home, Camryn ordered the maids at home not to reveal anything so he would be under the impression that his parents had gone traveling with Carrie When Trenton was still in elementary school, his parents sent him to boarding school as per Carrie¡¯s advice He was often away from home and at school, so he was used to not seeing his parents when he came home during school breaks. Trenton knew his parents loved him very much-especially his dad. After all, he was the only son. Nheless, Trenton felt sorry for Camryn and always favored her This caused him to offend Carrie His parents did not like him favoring Camryn, which was why they sent him to a boarding school. ¡°This vi was originally left for me by my dad They can¡¯t take it away just because they want to They also can¡¯t snatch thepany away Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Camryn was extremely cold when she said that She did not need Callum¡¯s support in a familiar environment and could move around freely. Camryn went in. She did not ask the movers in the courtyard anything and went straight into the house. ¡°Ms. Camryn, you¡¯re back.¡± The butler was being ordered about by Camryn¡¯s aunts. Seeing that Camryn was back, the butler greeted her and wiped his sweat away before saying. ¡°Ms. Camryn, your aunts said they were moving back in and had their things sent here Their rooms haven¡¯t been arranged yet. What do you think?¡± Camryn responded coldly. ¡°Tell the bodyguards to throw their things out!¡± The two rich women sitting on the sofa, who were not even looking at the youngdy, snapped their heads around when they heard Camryn. One of them shouted, ¡°I¡¯m moving back to my parents¡¯ house. Who dares throw my things out? Camryn, this is my parents¡¯ house. You don¡¯t have a say here.¡± Camryn sneered. ¡°This house is no longer under Grandpa¡¯s and Grandma¡¯s names, so it¡¯s not your home anymore. This house was left for me by my dad, so I do have a say. I don¡¯t wee here! you ¡°Ivan, tell the bodyguards to throw their things out and kick them out! This is my ce, and I call the shots!¡± The butler looked at Callum and knew he had Ms. Camryn¡¯s back. There was nothing to fear even if the sky was falling. With that, the butler immediately asked all the bodyguards toe over and move all her aunts¡¯ belongings outside. Camryn¡¯s aunts did not expect the bodyguards to really move their things. They were so mad they rushed over and wanted to teach Camryn a lesson. However, they saw Callum standing by Chapter 1535 Chapter 1535 Chapter 1535 ¡°Camryn, I dare you to throw our things out,¡± one of Camryn¡¯s aunts said. ¡°Why would I not have the guts to do so? This is my home I don¡¯t like you guys living here, and I won¡¯t let you stay. What are you going to do about it?¡± ¡°This is our parents¡¯ home!¡± Camryn scoffed. ¡°Your parents¡¯ home is a house that is under Grandpa¡¯s and Grandma¡¯s names. This isn¡¯t under their names, so it isn¡¯t your parents¡¯ home I might be your niece, but I¡¯m not obliged to take you in, so I won¡¯t let you stay!¡± Her aunts were on her uncle¡¯s side. They chose to lie to her about her father¡¯s death and did not want to help her now Furthermore, they scolded her for being ungrateful and cursed her to suffer a miserable death. Since they were unkind, she would not be virtuous. ¡°Even if your dad is alive, he can¡¯t kick me out if I want to move back here You¡¯re just a blind girl What right do you have to treat me like this? I¡¯ll teach you a lesson on behalf of your dad¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Aunt Brenda was hot-tempered She could not be bothered to argue with Camryn and wanted to make a move. How could Callum let Camryn¡¯s aunts touch her? Would that not mean they were pping him in the face? Callum easily grabbed Aunt Brenda¡¯s wrist. ¡°Who are you? This is our family matter, so you should stay out of it!¡± Aunt Brenda was struggling to be freed. Callum shook off her hand and said in a deep voice. ¡°I don¡¯t want to mind other people¡¯s family affairs, but Camryn is my fianc¨¦e. Her family affairs are mine, and I should care about them. How dare you try to hit my fianc¨¦e in front of me? Do you take me for a dead person?¡± ¡®Fianc¨¦e?¡¯ Camryn¡¯s aunts looked at each other. They never heard about Camryn¡¯s engagement. Their brother and his wife did not like her anyway, so they never bothered about her marriage. Moreover, Camryn had been living like an invisible person in the family. One would not normally ask to marry her as she could not benefit them in any way. Camryn¡¯s aunts knew she did not even have a boyfriend. A rich man would not marry Camryn, and a normal person would despise her for being blind. One would still need to take care of her if they were married, so who would want to marry her? ¡°Mr. York.¡± Camryn wanted to deny that she was Callum¡¯s fianc¨¦e. Callum reached out and pressed her mouth to keep her from saying anything further ¡°Camryn, I¡¯ve long regarded you as my wife Although you haven¡¯t epted my pursuit, I believe that you¡¯ll ept me one day.¡± ¡®Mr. York? ¡®He¡¯s from the Yorks?¡± Camryn¡¯s aunts exchanged looks. They could not believe that Camryn was fancied by a York. They only knew that Camryn was acquainted with Mrs. York and thedy was quite protective of her Therefore, their brother and his wife could only bow down. ¡°You¡¯re from the Yorks?¡± Callum answered coldly, ¡°I¡¯m the second among my brothers.¡± ¡°When did this blind girl be your fianc¨¦e, Mr. York? What do you see in her? She¡¯s blind-blind! Do you know what that means? She can¡¯t see anything at all, and yet you like her?! ¡°Mr. York, if you¡¯re looking for a girlfriend, I¡¯ll introduce my daughter to you. My daughter is younger and prettier than this blind girl. Most importantly, she¡¯s healthy and has big watery eyes.¡± Aunt Brenda was thick-faced and tried hard to sell her daughter. Aunt Amy did not want to be outdone. She said, ¡°My daughter has just turned twenty. Her face is full of cogen, and she¡¯s young and beautiful. Her body is also healthy in all aspects, which is so much better than this blind girl. ¡°Mr. York, this blind girl isn¡¯t good enough for you. You¡¯re a York. Why should you give in and marry a blind girl?¡± Chapter 1536 Chapter 1536 Chapter 1536 What Camryn¡¯s aunts said hurt her deeply. She had low self-esteem, to begin with, and felt unworthy of Callum After hearing their remarks, she felt more strongly about staying away from him. She was blind! She could not see anything. Nheless, Callum warned the two women with a dark face, ¡°I won¡¯t do anything to you since you¡¯re Camryn¡¯s aunts! That said, shut your dirty mouths! I don¡¯t need you to tell me if Camryn is good or bad- I just like her. Your daughters aren¡¯t even worthy of being my servants!¡± Once Camryn agreed to marry him, she would be the Yorks¡¯ second missus. By then, her aunts¡¯ daughters would not even be worthy of being her servants! ¡°Why are you still standing around? Throw the trash out and clean up now!¡± Callum raised his voice. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. The Newmans¡¯ bodyguards were sharp. They chose to follow Camryn¡¯s order. No matter how the two aunts insulted and pushed them, along with the servants, they quickly moved all the things outside and left them at the vi¡¯s entrance. Camryn¡¯s aunts refused to leave. They kept cursing and swearing. Camryn said to her butler coldly, ¡°Since my aunts don¡¯t want to leave in their cars, take a knife outside to puncture their car tires. They don¡¯t want to drive anyway, so they don¡¯t need the tires.¡± ¡°Camryn!¡± Camryn walked to the sofa and sat down. She did not care about her aunts¡¯ insults at all and did not want to argue with them anymore. She would not let them move in here anyway. Camryn could not see yet. If her aunts moved in now and moved outter on, she would not know if they took everything in her house away. She knew what her aunts were plotting. They just wanted to take advantage of the window of opportunity now. After all the trouble, Camryn¡¯s aunts finally left. They left in anger In fact, they left very quickly, afraid that their tires would be punctured if they took any longer After leaving the vi, Camryn¡¯s aunts said in unison, ¡°Let¡¯s go visit Mrs York tomorrow I don¡¯t believe that the elders of the Yorks can ept their son liking a blind girl¡± Aunt Brenda added. ¡°No wonder Camryn became tough all of a sudden She dares hold the property to herself and fights us for thepany¡¯s ownership It turns out that she¡¯s backed by the second son of the Yorks¡± Camryn¡¯s aunts did not know what she did to make Callum fall for her He was the second young master of the Yorks! Who would not want their daughters of marrying age to get together with men of the Yorks? Camryn¡¯s aunts dreamed of being inws with the Yorks. Unfortunately, the men of the Yorks could not be easily pursued. Their daughters could hardly even meet them, let alone pursue them. Some time ago, the Yorks¡¯ seventh son held a birthday party. The Yorks threw him a birthday party to celebrate his debut into the workforce. So far, seven young men of the Yorks were known to the public. It seemed like many opportunities, but they were out of reach. ¡°Brenda, are you going to leave just like that?¡± Brenda said, ¡°We¡¯ll go back first. Come and find me tomorrow, and we¡¯ll go visit Mrs. York at Wildridge Manor tomorrow. The man earlier is the eldest son of Old Mrs. York¡¯s second son. Mrs. York values her eldest son the most. She certainly won¡¯t agree to her son liking a blind girl.¡± As long as they ruined the rtionship between Camryn and Callum, Camryn would not be backed by anyone, and everything belonging to the Newmans would belong to them. Chapter 1537 Chapter 1537 Chapter 1537 Their only nephew, Trenton, was still a fledgling. He was not a concern to them at all. The sisters learned from thewyer that their brother and sister-inw would be heavily sentenced. Their sister-inw, in particr, was involved in criminal activities. She could probably be sentenced to jail for ten or twenty years. Their elder brother had killed their younger brother. If the police conducted a thorough investigation, he would be punished gravely to pay for his sins. Since their elder brother and sister-inw would have to spend the rest of their lives in jail, they could not let the blind Camryn reap all the benefits of the substantial worth and big businesses raked in by Newman Enterprise. They had to snatch it over and divide it between themselves. Each of them could get 500 million dors. ¡°Brenda, should we act as witnesses and provide our testimonies when Cain¡¯s trial starts?¡± Amy thought of Cain¡¯s case and asked about it in a whisper They did not have evidence that Cain and his wife had killed Abel, but they knew those two had something to do with his death. All evidence had long been destroyed by Cain and their sister-inw. However, Amy and Brenda had been closer to Cain all along. It was Evelyn who was the closest to Abel. After he died, Evelyn got into a big fight with Cain and rarely returned home afterward. She had been heartbroken. Evelyn only starteding back more often after Camryn almost died back then. ¡°We¡¯ll wait and see. If Camryn has the ability to go against Cain, then we won¡¯t have to do anything. If she doesn¡¯t, we¡¯ll do nothing too. If Cain¡¯s not defeated this time, he¡¯ll be released.¡± Having Cain in the family had given Amy and Brenda backing against their inws. They would still be on his side as long as there were still benefits. If Camryn could deal with their brother and sister-inw, they would only have to fight for inheritance with Camryn. However, if Camryn were that capable, it would be difficult for them to fight for the assets. They did not expect the blind girl, who usually looked useless, to be hiding so much from them. The moment Cain got into trouble, the blind girl bought over Dalton and took over Newman Enterprise first. Their sons, who had been working under their brother, could not even snatch the opportunity. Amy and Brenda never thought Dalton would help Camryn to take over Newman Enterprise. Although their sons also worked at Newman Enterprise, their positions were lower than Dalton¡¯s. The sisters left the Newmans¡¯ vi together Peace finally returned to the vi. Camryn said to the butler, ¡°If my aunts return again, don¡¯t agree to whatever they ask to do I¡¯ll bear the consequences for everything. You all were hired by my mom, and your loyalty belongs to her. My mom still has another child, a son, besides me. It¡¯ll never be my aunts¡¯ ce toe back and take over everything¡± She knew everyone¡¯s loyalty was not to her She was not in a rush to switch them out either A mass clean-up would have to wait until shepletely had Newman Enterprise under her control. However, those people would still help her out of consideration for Trenton. They would protect the house for him. Camryn hated her stepfather and biological mother, but she would not hate her brother After holding on to the Newman family¡¯s assets, she would hand over Trenton¡¯s portion to him. ¡°Yes, Ms. Camryn.¡± The butler poured a ss of water for Callum. After putting it down, she listened to Camryn¡¯s orders and replied to her respectfully. He listened to Ms. Camryn¡¯s arrangements because he saw her treating Mr. Trenton as usual and not doing anything to hurt the young master. As Ms. Camryn said, they all were loyal to Mrs. Newman. Mrs. Newman had three children. Ms. Camryn could be ignored, but not the young master They were not protecting Ms. Camryn¡¯s house. They were simply defending the home for the young master. That would be enough to repay Mrs. Newman¡¯s care to them over all those years. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°You all can rest after pouring some water for Mr. York. I don¡¯t need you all serving me.¡± The butler acknowledged the order respectfully again and gestured to the others to follow her out. Only Callum and Camryn were left in the grand hall. Chapter 1538 Chapter 1538 Chapter 1538 Callum epted the ss of warm water and took an elegant sip. ¡°Callum.¡± Camryn faced him and spoke calmly, ¡°I¡¯m not your fianc¨¦e!¡± ¡°Not now, but you¡¯ll be my fianc¨¦e and my wife in the future.¡± Callum said bossily, ¡°Camryn, I¡¯ll marry nobody else but you after setting my mind on you. Whether you escape or ept this, I¡¯ll only take you as my wife. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°I know I offended youst time. It was my mistake. It¡¯s understandable that you¡¯re angry at me, but I don¡¯t regret it. I wanted to kiss you because I like you. I wanted to show everyone that you¡¯re my woman.¡± Camryn was angered by Callum¡¯s bossy tone to the extent she did not want to talk anymore. ¡°Camryn, don¡¯t avoid me anymore.¡± Callum scooted over and took her bag. ¡°What are you doing, Callum?¡± Camryn wanted to snatch her bag back. Callum held her down with one hand and raised her bag high with the other. She could not take her bag back because she could not see. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I just want your phone number.¡± Callum stood and opened her bag. He took her phone from inside and dialed his number. That way, her would get her new phone number. ¡°If you change numbers again, I¡¯ll move to your store and live there. Let¡¯s see how you can avoid me then.¡± After realizing that threatening was useful, Callum started being thick-skinned. He turned brazen and used all sorts of threats. It made Camryn have the urge to chase him out. ¡°I¡¯ll arrange for two bodyguards to follow you tomorrow. I¡¯ll protect my fianc¨¦e.¡± Callum said, ¡°The York family¡¯s bodyguards are skilled in fighting. I¡¯ll feel at ease having them with you.¡± He would know her whereabouts at any time too. ¡°I don¡¯t need your protection.¡± ¡°Stop being stubborn, Cam. I¡¯m aware I don¡¯t know you well enough yet. You¡¯re hiding many things deeply. but you¡¯re blind. You¡¯re weak because of that.¡± After getting Camryn¡¯s new phone number, Callum ced her phone back inside her bag. He sat beside her again and fixed his dark eyes on her cute face. Seeing her stubborn expression, he poked her red lips with his finger dotingly It made her cover her mouth out of reflex and surprise ¡°Although I want to taste your sweetness again, it¡¯ll only anger you again I¡¯ll hold myself back for now When the time I can do as I wishes, I¡¯ll take my share with interest included. ¡°T¡¯ll let you kiss me back if you¡¯re still angry. Cam. How does that sound?¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°Callum, didn¡¯t you hear what my aunts said? I¡¯m blind. I¡¯m not good enough for you, so stop wasting your time on me. You can marry a girl who¡¯s a hundred or thousand times better than me as your wife¡± ¡°What did your aunts say? I didn¡¯t manage to listen clearly, and I won¡¯t. I¡¯m the one who decides whether you¡¯re good enough for me or not. If I say you deserve me, then you do.¡± Callum poked her forehead with his finger again bossily and dotingly. ¡°Stop overthinking. Cam. I¡¯ve never disliked you. You don¡¯t have to care about what others say too. It¡¯s enough as long as I don¡¯t dislike you.¡± Chapter 1539 Chapter 1539 Chapter 1539 ¡°From tomorrow onward, I¡¯ll send you flowers daily and officially start courting my fianc¨¦e I¡¯ll let everyone in Wiltspoon know that you, Camryn, are under my protection.¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°Let me repeat myself. If you avoid me again, I¡¯ll either move to your flower shop or your house and refuse to leave Don¡¯t even think about shaking me off unless you don¡¯t want your shop or house anymore¡± Camryn had no words. Seeing Camryn being angered to the point she could not talk, Callum was in a good mood She had made him miserable for more than half a month. He wanted to take his revenge ¡°It¡¯ste Go back to your room and rest I¡¯lle over and have breakfast with you tomorrow morning Wait for me to send you to the flower shop If you don¡¯t Callum¡¯s slender finger tapped on her rosy lips again. He really wanted to taste them as he wished ¡°You¡¯ll face the consequences. Camryn gritted her teeth. ¡°You¡¯re being a scoundrel, Callum ¡°Yes, I¡¯m a scoundrel. You totally ignored me when I was being a gentleman and avoided me like I was poisonous. Therefore, I decided to be a scoundrel Only a scoundrel can handle you Camryn was speechless. ¡°Rest early. I¡¯ll head home first. Good night.¡± Callum, who thought he had Camryn in his grasp, left the Newmans¡¯ vi in a good mood while humming. Meanwhile at the Buchams¡¯ residence, Josh the groom was utterly drunk. Although many groomsmen drank in his stead, many guests toasted to him too. He inevitably became drunk. He could not even walk steadily. It was Julian who helped him back to his suite. Jasmine followed behind them. She drank quite a lot too. Her face was red, which added to her beauty. After helping Josh lie down, Julian told Jasmine, ¡°I¡¯ll leave Josh to your care, Jasmine.¡± ¡°Thank you for getting him back, Julian.¡± Jasmine quickly thanked him. Many friends and rtives still wanted to y pranks on the newlyweds, but they dismissed the thought when they saw the groom could not even stand properly. ¡°Josh is drunk. You guys should stop making noise and let the newlyweds rest.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Julian waved his hand as he spoke He asked everyone to drop the thought of pranking and go back to rest The groom was drunk Julian was protective of his sister-inw as a brother and stopped everyone from ying pranks on the newlyweds Everyone had no choice but to return with disappointment After everyone left, Jasmine quickly closed the door to the room and locked it. Next, she searched the room. After confirming that no one was hiding in the room, she went to the bed and sat down. She pushed Josh and said, ¡°Stop pretending. They all left. I looked around too. There¡¯s no one in all the hiding spots in this room.¡± Josh opened his eyes. His gaze was clear without a hint of intoxication. He sat up and said worriedly, ¡°I have to look around again. I got excited ying pranks when others got. marriedst time. They said they would do the same when I get married, so we must be extra careful.¡± He had to pay for his actions sooner orter. He used to prank other people, which made them want to prank him back. Luckily, he pretended to be drunk and dodged the bullet. Josh searched the room again and even opened the windows to look out and see whether there were Spiderman wannabes outside. Upon confirming that there was nobody, he closed the windows. He looked relieved. ¡°The idea of pretending to be drunk isn¡¯t bad.¡± Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°You even have to be wary of others ying pranks on you at your wedding. Who told you to be so wild and kept pranking other people back then?¡± ¡°A marriage is a happy event. Everyone just had some fun. We won¡¯t go overboard. We only pranked the groom and never the bride.¡± Since the grooms were like brothers, they could just y pranks. However, the bride was off-limits so that no one frightened the bride who had just joined the family. Josh had pranked too many people on their wedding days in the past. That was why he was worried everyone would get their revenge during his wedding. Chapter 1540 Chapter 1540 Chapter 1540 Therefore, Josh pretended to be drunk. ¡°Dear.¡± With nobody pranking them, they could enjoy their wedding night thoroughly. Josh walked over. He sat at the edge of the bed and embraced Jasmine. His gaze was fiery ¡°Dear, every minute of the wedding night is precious. Let¡¯s not waste our time.¡± As Josh spoke, he swooped in for a kiss but was pushed away by Jasmine. ¡°I haven¡¯t removed my makeup or changed my clothes. I still have to shower. You should too.¡± Jasmine stood up and walked to the dressing table. She removed the pieces of jewelry she wore one by one. ¡°Bejeweled¡± was the perfect word to describe her that day. The number of jewelry Josh sent her was enough to start a jewelry store. Her family had prepared lots of jewelry for her too. When she showed herself, her neck and hands were adorned with jewelry. The splendor of it was blinding. At that moment, Jasmine felt like she was a mobile jewelry store. ¡°Dear, you look really beautiful today.¡± Josh approached her andplimented his newly wedded wife. ¡°When was I not?¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°You¡¯re right. My wife is always gorgeous.¡± While helping Jasmine to take off the jewelry on her, he smiled and asked, ¡°Dear, you must be tired, right?¡± ¡°I¡¯m tired, but it¡¯s a happy exhaustion. I wouldn¡¯t even know I could dress up that grandly if I didn¡¯t get married once.¡± ¡°I¡¯m so lucky to have married a wealthy wife. I can work five years less and just rest. I¡¯ll ignore Zachary when he asks me to work extra hours in the future. I have a rich wife taking care of me anyway.¡± Jasmine burst outughing. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Stop teasing me, Josh. You were the one who gave me all my riches.¡± Josh took the chance and hugged her from behind. ¡°Dear, I¡¯ve given you all I have. I¡¯ll also hand over the money I earn at York Corporation to you in the future. You must love me for the rest of your life.¡± ¡°If you love me forever, I¡¯ll do the same.¡± A marriage had to be maintained by both parties¡¯ efforts. Jasmine would not invest her efforts one-sidedly. If Josh loved and respected her, she would return the same feelings. Jasmine turned and encircled his neck with both arms. Then, she gave him her lips. After a deep kiss, Jasmine said softly, ¡°Josh, go get a shower first.¡± ¡°Are you still calling me Josh?¡± ¡°Hubby.¡± Josh immediately looked relieved and said, ¡°Dear, you have to call me hubby more. Hearing you call me like that makes my bones go soft.¡± Jasmine pecked his cheek again: ¡°Okay, okay. I¡¯ll call you hubby and make your bones go limp every day. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say each second of the wedding night is precious? We can¡¯t waste time. Aren¡¯t you going to bathe?¡± Josh lifted Jasmine. ¡°Dear, let¡¯s bathe together. If we do that, we won¡¯t have to wait for each other.¡± Jasmine felt embarrassed. However, it was their blissful day, and that night was their first night as husband and wife. There was no need to be embarrassed. Therefore, Jasmine hugged Josh¡¯s neck tightly and said readily, ¡°Okay. Let¡¯s take a bath together to save time.¡± Josh carried his wife into the bathroom happily. It was a night filled with much affection. Josh, who had sessfully gotten his beautiful wife, started his wedding night blissfully. Chapter 1541 Chapter 1541 Chapter 1541 The sun rose. It was a new day. When Serenity woke up, she realized her sister was already awake. After Liberty was discharged, Serenity insisted that Liberty move into her and Zachary¡¯s house to keep an eye on her while she was recuperating. Considering that she had to recuperate and take care of a three-year-old, Liberty agreed to her sister¡¯s request. The mother and son moved into Zachary¡¯s vi on the hilltop temporarily Liberty brought her son to take a walk in the garden. During that season, Wiltspoon was starting to get hot. Many people could not resist turning on the air conditioner when the sun was up and zing during the day. However, it was still cooling in the morning. Mornings in the vi were quiet. Liberty liked taking a walk in the garden in the mornings. She could exercise and admire the flowers at the same time. Zachary was not a fan of flowers and nts. In the past, they simply existed to beautify the vi. However, the vi ended up being decorated into a garden. It was because Serenity liked growing flowers. Zachary moved over a wide variety of pretty flowering nts from the greenhouse of the manor. He nted them in the vi on the hilltop for his beloved wife to enjoy them every day. That day was Sonny¡¯s day off. He did not need to go to the gym. He was ted. Although he had been going to the lessons for some time and gotten used to it, he still wanted to rest and cling to his mother asionally. ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny stopped in front of a pot of flowers. He turned and asked his mother, ¡°Mom, can I pluck this flower?¡± ¡°Why do you want to pluck it?¡± Liberty did not reject her son immediately. Instead, she asked him the reason for wanting to do so. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Sonny¡¯s big eyes gleamed. He said, ¡°I want to pluck the flower because I think it¡¯s pretty.¡± ¡°What will you do after that?¡± Sonny did not know what to reply. Liberty squatted ¡°You want to pluck the flower and y with it just because you think it¡¯s pretty, right?¡± Sonny nodded He had the urge to pluck the flower because it was blooming beautifully. ¡°If you think this flower is pretty, other people will feel the same too. If everyone plucks the flower because they think it¡¯s beautiful like you, there¡¯ll soon be no more flowers for everyone to admire. ¡°Do you like seeing an empty flower pot or plenty of flowers blooming on the stems?¡° Sonny knew that his thought of wanting to pluck the flowers was wrong. His eyes still shone, but the expression on his innocent face showed he was aware of his mistake. ¡°Mom, I won¡¯t pluck flowers anymore. I¡¯ll leave the flowers blooming on their own so everyone can enjoy them.¡± Liberty caressed her son¡¯s face. She praised him gently, ¡°You¡¯re a good boy. Whether you¡¯re in Aunt Ser¡¯s ce or ying outside, remember not to pluck flowers, okay?¡± Sonny nodded his head sensibly. ¡°Liberty.¡± Serenity heard her sister educating her nephew about a minor matter and walked over. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny jogged toward Serenity with a smile. Serenity lifted him. ¡°If you like flowers, how about I pluck one for you?¡± Sonny shook his head. ¡°Don¡¯t pluck the flowers, Aunt Ser. That way, we can see blooming flowers every day.¡± Serenity said to her sister with a smile, ¡°Sonny understands everything right after he¡¯s taught.¡± ¡°Children have to be educated from a young age. Humans are fundamentally good in nature upon birth. Everyone is like a sheet of nk paper at the start. It depends on how we, as parents, fill the paper up. Parents are the first teachers of children. Our words and actions will influence our children forever. ¡°Why are you up so early and not sleeping in? The bookstore isn¡¯t open today, right?¡± Chapter 1542 Chapter 1542 Chapter 1542 ¡°We won¡¯t be open for a few days because school holidays start today. Liberty, your body hasn¡¯t fully recovered. You should be lying down more.¡± Serenity put Sonny down. He raced ahead energetically while the sisters strolled behind him. ¡°My bones will grow moldy if I keep lying down. I don¡¯t feel any difort now. It¡¯s just some itch and pain from my wound. ¡°I¡¯ll have to return to manage All You Can Eat after Jasmine visits her family.¡± Serenity and Liberty would be having a meal with the Sox family when Jasmine returned to visit them after their wedding day. After that, Josh would take Jasmine on their honeymoon. He had two months of marriage leave. While the sisters were walking, a maid came over and said respectfully, ¡°Missus, Mr. Lewis is here.¡± Upon hearing the maid¡¯s words, Serenity looked toward her sister instinctively. Liberty said indifferently. ¡°Seren, whether hees or not, it has nothing to do with me.¡± Duncan was holding back when she was still in the hospital. He did not want her to be distracted by rtionship matters while recuperating. Once Liberty was discharged, Duncan stopped suppressing his feelings for her. Even a fool could tell that he was pining for her. Every time Duncan saw Liberty, his fiery gaze would always follow after her. ¡°Duncan is here for you,¡± Serenity said. Next, she said to the maid, ¡°Go and check if Zachary is awake. If he isn¡¯t, have Sam invite Mr. Lewis into the house and attend to him as our guest. My sister and I still wish to walk a little longer.¡± Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. Her sister did not ept Duncan¡¯s feelings. She was on her sister¡¯s side. The maid replied respectfully and carried out Serenity¡¯s instructions. Everyone was used to Duncaning over early in the morning for free breakfast. Even without Serenity¡¯s instructions, Mr. Lewis¡¯s car could enter the vi freely. Before Duncan parked the car, he saw from afar that Serenity and Liberty were taking a walk and admiring the flowers When he took another look after parking the car, he could not spot them anymore. He was not in a rush to go over to them. He got out of the car and asked Sam, who was out to wee him, ¡°Sam, is Zachary still sleeping?¡± ¡°Mr Zachary got a little drunkst night. He hasn¡¯t woken up yet.¡± Sam smiled and said, ¡°You maye inside to wait, Mr Lewis. Mr Zachary should be up soon.¡± The missus was already strolling in the garden. Mr. Zachary would not be able to stay asleep for long. After getting drunk, he would sulk if he could not see the missus the next morning. In the past, everyone would feel anxious whenever Zachary sulked. It was as if the end of the world was upon them. However, everyone was no longer afraid because Missus was there. They were simply guessing how long it would take for the man of the house to wake up sulkily. ¡°Sure.¡± Duncan followed Sam into the house. The moment he stepped inside, he saw Zachary, who was about toe downstairs. Zachary¡¯s face was tense with a serious expression on it. It was just as Sam predicted. He had felt a headache when he woke up after getting drunk the night prior. Before he opened his eyes, he let out a groan on purpose so that his wife would coddle him. It turned out that his wife was long gone. He touched her spot under the duvet, and it was chilly. It meant. Serenity had woken up very early. Zachary was used to being prioritized. He hoped Serenity would revolve around him, especially when he was feeling ufortable. However, Serenity would be thest person to revolve around him. Upon seeing his friend, who hade over bright early in the morning and even before he got downstairs, Zachary¡¯s expression turned grimmer. Only Duncan could walk to the sofa and sit calmly without caring about Zachary¡¯s stern expression. Chapter 1543 Chapter 1543 Chapter 1543 ¡°You didn¡¯t sleep wellst night?¡± Duncan asked his friend out of concern. He saw Zacharying downstairs with a tense face. Zachary walked over and sat on the single- seated sofa. ¡°Didn¡¯t you get drunkst night?¡± Zachary returned a question. Duncan smiled. He said, ¡°I only drank two sses. I didn¡¯t get drunk.¡± After a pause, he added, ¡°You all have someone taking care of you after getting drunk. I¡¯m single-I have no one to take care of me even if I get wasted, so I didn¡¯t dare to drink so much.¡± Zachary scoffed. ¡°Ms. Harmon would¡¯ve been happy to take care of you.¡± With the mention of Lily, the smile on Duncan¡¯s face faded. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°Nothing will happen between Lily and I. She has moved out of my house too.¡± Lily was prepared to leave Wiltspoon. The partnerships she had been negotiating were more or less settled. When Mrs. Lewis started trying harder to get Lily and Duncan together, Lily told her the truth that she had not been wooing Duncantely. Duncan¡¯s attention was not on her She did not want to put in any more. meaningless effort. Her trip to Wiltspoon was fruitful. It was time for her to return home. ¡°Your mom doesn¡¯t think so. You¡¯re here this early for my sister-inw, right? She said she has no feelings for you.¡± Duncan said patiently, ¡°I know Liberty doesn¡¯t have feelings for me, but this doesn¡¯t affect me from pursuing her. ¡°It¡¯s fine as long as I¡¯m interested in her.¡± Zachary red at him. Duncan chuckled. Sam poured him a ss of water. ¡°Sam, where¡¯s your missus?¡± Zachary asked. Sam said, ¡°Missus and Ms. Hunt are taking a walk and admiring the flowers in the garden with Sonny.¡± Zachary hummed a response and did not ask more. He stood and left Duncan to walk out of the house. It was obvious that he was going to look for Serenity Duncan followed after him brazenly. Zachary turned to nce at Duncan. He said, ¡°Why are you following me?¡± Duncan smiled. ¡°I miss Sonny I want to see him.¡± They walked together and soon met the sisters, who were walking back. ¡°Sonny¡± Duncan called out. ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny did not know Duncan wished to be his father Upon seeing Duncaning over, the child ran toward him excitedly ¡°Sonny,e here. Let Uncle Zak carry you.¡± Sonny did run over, but the person who carried him was Zachary, Duncan had already squatted and opened his arms. He was waiting for Sonny to throw himself into his arms, but Zachary came in between them. The sisters walked over. ¡°Mr. Lewis,¡± Serenity greeted Duncan politely. He acknowledged her greeting with a smile and looked toward Liberty. ¡°Good morning, Mr. Lewis,¡± Liberty greeted calmly. She faced his gaze openly without avoiding it too. Chapter 1544 Chapter 1544 Chapter 1544 Duncan saw the calmness in Liberty¡¯s eyes. She truly was not interested in him at all. That knowledge made Duncan feel defeated, but he soon got over it. Liberty had experienced a failed marriage before. Her ex-husband¡¯s family was also pestering her at that moment. She was repulsed by love and marriage as a result. Duncan would need a long time to melt Liberty¡¯s heart and make her believe in love and marriage again. Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org. He also gave himself a few years to pursue her and wait for her reply. He was not in a rush anyway He was willing to keep waiting unless Liberty got married to someone else. ¡°Good morning, Liberty.¡± Duncan returned Liberty a greeting. Zachary left with Serenity with Sonny in his arms. As he walked, heined to his wife, ¡°Honey, I was drunkst night and woke up with a headache this. morning. I think my headache worsened because I couldn¡¯t see you after opening my eyes.¡± Serenity hooked his arm and said softly, ¡°I didn¡¯t wake you up because you were sleeping soundly Does your head still hurt? You can continue sleeping after breakfast It¡¯s the holidays. You can get a good rest¡± ¡°Come and rest with me. ¡°Okay I¡¯ll be with you.¡± The unhappiness Zachary felt when he did not see his wife upon waking uppletely dissipated. He was that easy to coax. Duncan watched Liberty and asked concernedly, ¡°How are you feeling today. Liberty?¡± I¡¯m doing fine. Thank you for your concern, Mr. Lewis,¡± Liberty replied formally. After a moment of silence, Duncan said, ¡°Liberty, you¡¯ve be a lot colder toward me.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not true. I¡¯ve always treated you like this, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty gazed at Duncan calmly. ¡°You¡¯ve helped me out a lot I feel grateful to you. Why will I be cold to you?¡± She seemed as if she had not changed, but she did. She was cold and distant to him. ¡°Liberty, I really like you.¡± Duncan confessed his feelings in front of her. Liberty was still calm. ¡°Thank you for your love, Mr. Lewis. However, I¡¯m not interested in rtionships right now. Please stop thinking about me. It¡¯s a waste of time. You and Ms. Harmon are a good match, Mr. Lewis.¡± ¡°It¡¯s true that Lily and I have equal social status and background. Our mothers are best friends too. My mom has been trying hard to get Lily and me together, but I don¡¯t feel attracted to her at all.¡± Duncan looked toward Liberty with a serious gaze. He said earnestly, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m not a young and rash. boy anymore. I¡¯m thirty-six. I¡¯m clear about what I want and know what I¡¯m doing. ¡°Every word I sayes from my heart. I know you¡¯re not interested in rtionships now I can wait. I just hope that you¡¯ll treat me as usual and not be cold and distant to me.¡± Liberty met his gaze and said, ¡°I¡¯m not avoiding the problem, Mr Lewis. I simply don¡¯t have feelings for you, so I don¡¯t want to give you false hope and waste your time. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I¡¯m a divorced woman. I¡¯m not saying that divorced women don¡¯t have the right to pursue love again. It¡¯s just that I don¡¯t believe in love anymore. I don¡¯t want to be involved in romantic rtionships Running my breakfast diner and earning money to raise Sonny is enough for me. ¡°I know you¡¯re not being impulsive or fooling me, but we really don¡¯t suit each other. Please don¡¯t waste your efforts on me anymore, Mr. Lewis. You¡¯re a great guy. If you¡¯re willing to turn your gaze elsewhere. you¡¯ll find a better girl who suits you more than I do.¡± Liberty had no doubt that Duncan liked her. However, she was no longer a young girl who was inexperienced in love. She would not jump into a rtionship rashly. Apart from the existing difference between she and Duncan, the fact that Mrs. Lewis disliked her also stopped her from falling in love. Liberty had finally managed to escape the conflicts she had had with her inws. She never wanted to have a headache or get angry over issues with her inws again. Why would she make things difficult for herself again? Moreover, she truly had no feelings for Duncan. She never thought of bing a couple with him. ¡°If you¡¯ll excuse me, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty said apologetically, ¡°I¡¯ll be heading into the house first.¡± After speaking, she walked past Duncan. Chapter 1545 Chapter 1545 Chapter 1545 Duncan stood still. He silently watched as Liberty walked past him. He only left after some time. He had preempted what would happen after he confessed to Liberty. He was also mentally prepared to wait several years for Liberty to develop feelings for him. Upon entering the house, Duncan received a concerned gaze from his friend. Zachary did not ask any questions as Duncan seemed alright. He just called him over to have breakfast together. He patted Duncan¡¯s shoulder and whispered, ¡°It¡¯s okay. Take it slow.¡± Duncan smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯m not in a rush. I have a lifetime to spend on her.¡± He would not give up as long as Liberty did not get married to someone else. ¡°Sonny is an important piece,¡± Zachary whispered. Duncan hummed in agreement. ¡°I know. I like Sonny from the bottom of my heart.¡± He had liked Sonny even before he fell in love with Liberty, let alone now ¡°Let¡¯s go and have breakfast.¡± Zachary invited his friend to eat together. Serenity and Liberty had already brought Sonny to the dining area. Duncan did not restrain himself whenever he was at Zachary¡¯s ce. It was as if he was returning to his own home. It was the weekends followed by the holidays. After breakfast, Zachary nned to bring his wife back to the manor to apany Grandma May. Liberty and Sonny tagged along too. ¡°I¡¯m free anyway I haven¡¯t seen Grandma May for some time. I miss her a lot. I¡¯ll go with you all, Zachary ¡± Actually, Duncan had seen Grandma May just yesterday. She was evenughing excitedly during Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding. Although Josh was not her grandson, he was good friends with Zachary The Buchams and Yorks were also close, so she treated Josh as her own grandson. Grandma May was happy that Josh had found his happiness. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. As Zachary lifted Sonny into the car, he told Duncan, ¡°Your legs are yours-I can¡¯t possibly stop you if you want to go.¡± Duncan looked toward Liberty. He hoped she would take his car However, Liberty did not notice that She sat in the same car as her son. Zachary and Serenity shared a car Duncan could squeeze into Liberty¡¯s car but gave up after thinking about it. He could still see Liberty and Sonny if he followed them to Wilridge Manor. Not long after, several cars exited the vi and headed toward the manor. Meanwhile, in the Newmans¡¯ house, Camryn did not expect Callum would actuallye over early in the morning to give her a ride to work. She was about to head out in her family¡¯s car, but Callum¡¯s car was parked horizontally in front of the vi¡¯s gates. No matter how many times the driver honked, he would not budge. ¡°Ms. Newman, Mr. York refuses to move his car. We won¡¯t be able to go out.¡± The driver gave up on honking. He turned his head to talk to Camryn. Callum got out of his car. He leaned against his car with hands in his pockets. He stared at Camryn¡¯s car. He was waiting for Camryn to admit defeat. Chapter 1546 Chapter 1546 Chapter 1546 Camryn scolded Callum a hundred times over mentally. In the end, she got out of her car Callum moved the moment she came out. He walked over and took her white cane gently. He guided her over to his car T¡¯ll be the one to send you every day from now on. ¡°Oh, by the way¡­¡± Callum gestured for two bodyguards toe over They were bodyguards he mobilized from the manor He usually did not bring bodyguards along when he went out. He was not as popr as Zachary, and he did not need bodyguards blocking off fangirls for him. When the bodyguards approached them, Callum said, ¡°This is Ms. Newman, your future Mrs. York You. two will be guarding her from here on out. You¡¯re not supposed to supervise but protect her. If there are problems that you can¡¯t handle, contact me.¡± Those words were meant for Camryn. In fact, he arranged for two bodyguards to follow her to protect her and know her location whenever he wanted to meet her Callum had tasted the pain of yearning for someone after being avoided by Camryn for more than half a month. He did not want to experience it again. ¡°Camryn, their names are James and Adam.¡± After speaking, Callum told the bodyguards, ¡°Introduce yourselves. Let Ms. Newman remember your voices.¡± James greeted Camryn first, followed by Adam. Camryn had a good memory. She could remember them as long as the bodyguards spoke in front of her ¡°Callum, I don¡¯t need them following me.¡± Camryn knew her objection was useless, but she still voiced it out. ¡°I think you need them very much.¡± Callum helped her get inside the car and even fastened her seatbelt. He walked around the car back to the driver¡¯s seat. ¡°You can only walk around freely at ces you¡¯re familiar with. It¡¯s easy to get into idents when you go to foreign ces. Even if you¡¯re smart, you can¡¯t see anything for now-this is your greatest disadvantage People will take advantage of your weakness and harm you. ¡°You still remember what happened that night, right? If it weren¡¯t for my sister-inw insisting I send you home that night and if I didn¡¯t follow you, I¡¯m sure you would know the consequences without me telling you.¡± After a moment of silence, Camryn said, ¡°They were trying to harm me.¡± ¡°They¡¯re in jail waiting to be sentenced now, but can you guarantee that no one will target you again? Your aunts are hoping that you get into an ident.¡± If Camryn got into an ident, no one would fight for the inheritance with them. Camryn did not say a word. ¡°I promise that they¡¯ll only protect and not monitor you. They¡¯re like my sister-inw¡¯s bodyguards who¡¯re only in charge of her safety¡± Camryn pressed her lips together and kept quiet. No matter how good he made his words sound, it could not erase the fact that he was getting someone to keep an eye on her ¡°Callum, what do I have to do to make you give up?¡± Callum said while driving, ¡°I won¡¯t give up no matter what you do. From the day my nana passed your picture to me, you were to be my wife.¡± ¡°Does the high and mighty Mr. Callum feel satisfied with letting the elders control your marriage?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Callum smiled and said, ¡°Camryn, you don¡¯t have to drive a wedge between my nana and me or provoke me I didn¡¯t have anyone I liked before you. Nana chose you for me. After interacting with you, I feel we get along well. That was why I approved of Nana¡¯s arrangement. Camryn was speechless. She still could not understand why Old Mrs. York would choose her She was blind. Although there were chances that she could regain her sight, the time had note yet. She was currently still blind. Even her biological aunts hated her and said she was blind. She was not good enough for Callum Grandma May was Callum¡¯s grandmother by blood. She was famous for loving her grandchildren How could she choose a blind person to be Callum¡¯s wife? Chapter 1547 Chapter 1547 Chapter 1547 Not many people knew that Camryn was chosen for Callum by Grandma May. However, even if everyone did, they still could not guess the old woman¡¯s intent. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Callum also could not understand why his nana chose Camryn for him. It was only after knowing that she had long been involved in Newman Enterprise did he understand a little. Although he did not care about the Newmans¡¯ assets, if he and Camryn became a couple and have childrenter, their children would be able to inherit the Newman family¡¯s assets in addition to the Yorks¡¯ That was the first thing that came to his mind. Of course, Callum did not think that his nana was after Camryn¡¯s family assets, but Camryn herself. The York family had a fortune worth hundreds of billions, but the Newmans¡¯ assets only amounted to a billion. Furthermore, there was a portion of their assets that would be seized soon and their worth would shrink significantly. There was no way his nana was after the Newman family property. She just understood what Camryn was like and wanted to lure such a person into the York family. ¡°Camryn, I told you that I¡¯ll find you a miracle doctor to treat your eyes. You¡¯ll definitely restore your sight ¡°But even if you can¡¯t see for the rest of your life, so what? I can be your eyes. I¡¯ll let you feel the beauty of this world.¡± Callum said soberly, ¡°I think you¡¯re only suitable for the York family. The elders in my family are very open- minded and can ept your shorings. As long as I don¡¯t dislike you, you don¡¯t have to feel inferior.¡± Camryn was silent for a moment before smiling wryly. ¡°Is it that easy to find a miracle healer? Aunt Evelyn went to Annenburg countless times but couldn¡¯t even get the doctor¡¯s contact number ¡°York Corporation works closely with FC & Co., and my sister-inw is friends with Mrs. Johnson. The genius doctor is about to marry into the Johnson family. If I ask the doctor toe over and treat your eyes, my chances of sess are definitely much greater than your aunt¡¯s. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Camryn. I said I would help restore your sight, so I¡¯ll definitely be able to ask the doctor to treat your eyes.¡± Callum learned from Remy that Dr. Carden would soone back with Tim soon. However, Dr. Carden was huge with pregnancy now and could not travel far. Tim would also not agree to Dr. Carden flying to Wiltspoon while pregnant just to help cure Camryn¡¯s eyes. ¡°The miracle doctor¡¯s apprentice, Dr. Carden, is the fourth young master of the Johnson family¡¯s lover. She is pregnant now and unfit to travel far, but after shees back to give birth and recuperates, I¡¯ll definitely go to Johnsons in person and invite her to help treat your eyes.¡± Evelyn went through painstaking effort just to find out that the doctor was in Annenburg. However, that was all the information she could find On the other hand, Callum could find out the recent status of Dr Carden, who was the genius doctor¡¯s senior apprentice Ring, ring, ring. Camryn¡¯s phone rang. She took out her phone and answered it. ¡°Are you at home or at the store?¡± Dalton asked in a warm and deep voice ¡°I¡¯m on my way to the store What¡¯s wrong?¡± Mostpanies were on holiday now, but she still opened her store. Business was better during the holidays. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. Today is a holiday, so I thought of bringing my girlfriend over to see you so you can get to know each other better.¡± Dalton¡¯s girlfriend was aware of Camryn¡¯s existence, but she did not spend much time with Camryn. Women were sensitive creatures. His girlfriend could feel Dalton¡¯s concern over Camryn and she was rather wary of Camryn. In the past, Dalton was not willing to let his girlfriend and Camryne into contact mainly because he could not let people know of his rtionship with Camryn. Now that he knew Callum liked Camryn, he gave up on Camryn and decided to treat her like a sister. Thus, he felt that it was necessary to ease the rtionship between his girlfriend and Camryn. Chapter 1548 Chapter 1548 Chapter 1548 ¡°Have you reached? Do you want me to arrange for someone to pick you up?¡± Camryn had a deep impression of Dalton¡¯s girlfriend. Although the two had only spent a short time together and his girlfriend was wary of her, she truly thought of his girlfriend as her future sister-inw Daltonughed. ¡°No need. We arrivedst night and are staying in a hotel. We just finished breakfast and are about to go to your store now.¡± ¡°You didn¡¯t tell me that you camest night.¡± ¡°You were attending Mr. Bucham¡¯s weddingst night, so I didn¡¯t want to bother you. Okay, I¡¯m going to drive now. See youter. Your sister-inw brought you a lot of local specialties.¡± Camryn smiled. ¡°I¡¯m looking forward to it. See youter.¡± After she ended the call, Callum asked, ¡°Was it that Mitchell guy again?¡± ¡°Your ears are sharp enough to hear. Why bother asking?¡± Camryn added calmly, ¡°Dal brought his girlfriend over to spend the holidays with me.¡± ¡°He has a girlfriend?¡± ¡°He always had a girlfriend. They¡¯ve been dating for a few years and should be getting married soon.¡± She exined, ¡°Dal and I are like siblings. Although we¡¯re not rted by blood, I¡¯ve always thought of him as my older brother, and he also treats me as his younger sister¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Callum thought in his heart, ¡®Dalton has feelings for you. It¡¯s only you who doesn¡¯t think of him that way.¡± When they returned to Spring Blossoms, Dalton and his girlfriend, Melissa, were waiting in the store. Dalton was not surprised at all when he saw Callum¡¯s Maybach. Callum helped Camryn out of the car. Dalton came out of the store with his girlfriend. When Melissa saw how gentle and considerate Callum was toward Camryn, she guessed the rtionship between the two without having to ask, and the smile on her face became more sincere. Callum held Camryn¡¯s hand and faced Dalton together with her. ¡°Dal.¡± Camryn tried to break free from his hand but failed. He held onto her tightly and refused to let go. After two unsessful attempts, Camryn gave up and let him hold her hand. She already told him that Dalton and she were just like siblings, but he still wanted to assert dominance in front of Dalton. Wait, she did not agree to be with him. She was not his woman. Why was he asserting dominance? Although Dalton brought his girlfriend over, Callum was still full of jealousy toward this man. He stared at Dalton for a long time before a smile finally appeared on his face, and he said warmly, ¡°Camryn told me that you¡¯re like a brother to her, so from now on, I¡¯ll follow her example and call you Dal too.¡± Callum used Camryn¡¯s nickname for Dalton. Dalton¡¯s eyes fell on Callum¡¯srge hand that was holding Camryn tightly. He said with a vague smile, ¡°What¡¯s your rtionship with Cam now, Mr. York?¡± Callum disliked hearing Dalton refer to Camryn as Cam. The atmosphere between the two men became tense. ¡°Dalton, let¡¯s go inside the store first. Everyone is watching.¡± Melissa reminded her boyfriend, then said to Camryn, ¡°Come, Camryn. I¡¯ll help you inside.¡± She reached out and took Camryn¡¯s other hand, easily rescuing her from Callum¡¯s grip. Chapter 1549 Chapter 1549 Chapter 1549 Melissa¡¯s words made the two tense men temporarily suppress their anger toward each other When entering the store, the two men walked side by side and almost bumped into each other Dalton red at Callum and said in a low voice, ¡°Mr. York, Cam has not epted your advances yet, so please give her the respect she deserves. Don¡¯t get all touchy-feely with her Callum responded defiantly, ¡°Camryn isn¡¯t really your sister You two have differentst names. Only Aunt Evelyn has the right to say such things to me. Besides, I¡¯m not taking advantage of Camryn. I held her hand to help her out of the car because she can¡¯t see.¡± Dalton paused, before saying, ¡°Cam thinks of me as her brother, and she was the one who saved my life We¡¯ve been siblings for many years. She¡¯s my sister in my heart!¡± 1 am aware that you and Camryn are close. That¡¯s why I¡¯m calling you Dal too.¡± Dalton choked. Callum¡¯s expression seemed to say, ¡®Since I¡¯m calling you Dal, it means I think of you as a brother too. I¡¯m showing you plenty of respect. ¡°I¡¯m hardly worthy. You should just stick to calling me Mr. Mitchell.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll call you whatever Camryn calls you. I listen to Camryn. You should have heard that the men of the York family are very obedient to their wives.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Dalton¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Camryn hasn¡¯t married you yet.¡± ¡°She will sooner orter.¡± Dalton was speechless. ¡°It¡¯s my first time learning that you are so thick-skinned.¡± Callum smiled ¡°I need to be thick-skinned to pursue my wife. If my skin isn¡¯t thick enough and I give up after being rejected, I¡¯ll never be able to catch her.¡± Dalton choked again. The conversation between the two was not loud, but Camryn and Melissa both heard them. Melissa asked Camryn with a smile, ¡°Is he pursuing you now? He¡¯s not bad.¡± She heard Dalton call Callum ¡°Mr York¡±, but she had no idea who ¡°Mr. York¡± was in Wiltspoon. ¡°How many off days do you have, Melissa?¡± Melissa worked in apany She did not simplyze around and enjoy life just because her boyfriend earned several million a year and insisted on going to work. Even if her ie was far inferior to Dalton¡¯s, in her words, it was always more satisfying to spend money that she earned herself. ¡°I only have the weekends off as well, so three days in total.¡± Camryn smiled ¡°Three days off is fine People like us who are self-employed can¡¯t even get a single day off¡± ¡°But you have freedom. I also want to open a store after getting married and run a small business. I don¡¯t want to work in an office anymore Camryn, does your flower shop make arge profit?¡± ¡°It¡¯s enough for me to make a living, and thepetition is very fierce Are you nning to open a flower shop too?¡± After they sat down, Camryn skillfully made tea for everyone. Melissa looked at her eyes and asked with concern, ¡°Camryn, has your eyesight still not recovered at all?¡± ¡°No.¡± Camryn steeped the tea while saying, ¡°But as long as I¡¯m in a familiar environment, I can do many things by myself. Practice makes perfect.¡± Melisa nodded and said, ¡°I want to open a caf¨¦ since I¡¯m not very fond of flowers. If you want to open a store, you have to involve yourself in an industry that you like. Only then will you run the business with care and dedication, and only then can you seed.¡± Camryn nodded. She also thought of opening a caf¨¦ at first, but she finally chose to open a florist instead because she liked taking care of flowers and nts. Before she lost her sight, most of the flowers and nts in the Newman family vi were nted and grown especially well by her She was neglected at home and did not get along with her parents and sister, so she wanted to find something to do to avoid them. Thus, she turned to gardening. She grew to actually enjoy flowers and nts as she raised more and more nts, gaining experience along the way. Thus, she opened a flower store. Chapter 1550 Chapter 1550 Chapter 1550 Camryn and Melissa chatted about opening a store, but the two men had nomon topic They simply stared at each other In the meantime, Zachary took Serenity back to the manor and saw two cars blocking the entrance. The cars were not parked haphazardly but side-by-side They just so happened to be blocking the gate The security booth at the entrance of the manor had guards on duty As soon as they saw the Rolls- Royce, they knew that Zachary had returned. The two guards on duty hurriedly came out and went to the windows of the aforementioned two cars After they tapped on the windows and the drivers lowered the windows, the guards said, ¡°Our young master is back. Please move your car aside while waiting for the butler to give us his reply before you can drive in.¡± The two cars belonged to none other than Camryn¡¯s aunts. The sisters hade to meet Rose. However, they came too early. Rose had not woken up yet. The butler did not dare let them in without Rose¡¯s permission, so they waited in their cars. They did not realize that their cars happened to block the entrance of the manor. The twodies listened to the security guards and hurriedly instructed their drivers to move their cars to the side. A few minutester, Zachary and his motorcade drove into Wildridge Manor The bodyguards¡¯ cars were parked in the open parking lot, but the Rolls-Royce that Zachary was sitting in headed directly to the door of the main house before stopping. The car carrying Liberty and Sonny also arrived at the door of the main house. Duncan, a regr visitor to the manor, casually parked his car in the open parking lot. He got out of the car, walked back to the security booth, and asked nosily, ¡°Whose cars are those outside?¡± ¡°They¡¯re Mrs. Chandler and Mrs. Joyner They want to meet Madam Rose, but she hasn¡¯t woken up yet, so Mason asked them to wait for a while ¡° This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Mason was the butler of Callum¡¯s family. Duncan did not remember much about the Chandler and Joyner families. Those families were obviously not on the same level as the Lewises. ¡°I see¡± Duncan lost interest. He gave a pack of cigarettes each to the guards on duty and walked toward the main house. Duncan knew the scenery of Wildridge Manor like the back of his hand, so he could not appreciate it much. When he passed by a gazebo, he saw Grandma May practicing ptes. ¡°Grandma May¡± Duncan stopped and greeted the old woman with a smile. If he were driving, he would have passed by in a sh and would not see her practicing ptes here. Grandma May looked at him, but her movements continued on. She smiled and said, ¡°You¡¯re here, Duncan.¡± ¡°Zachary is back too I came with him. Mypany is on holiday now and I didn¡¯t make any ns, so I followed him over to see you.¡± In the past, whenever there was a holiday, the three best friends would either go golfing, horseback riding, or sailing together. In short, they always had ns. Now, Zachary had a wife and stuck to her side like gum during the holidays. He did not want to go anyway. Josh was a newlywed. After bringing Jasmine back to her family¡¯s home tomorrow, he would be taking his new wife out for their honeymoon. Duncan felt that he became a loner. There was nowhere for him to go. ¡°Are you really here to see me, or is that just an excuse?¡± Grandma May grinned. ¡°Liberty and Sonny came over too, didn¡¯t they?¡± Chapter 1551 Chapter 1551 Chapter 1551 ¡°Liberty and Sonny are here too, but I really dide here to see you, Grandma May.¡± Duncan stepped into the gazebo, sat down, and watched the olddy continue with her ptes. He said. ¡°When my granny was still alive, I asked her to practice ptes with you, but she didn¡¯t listen to me.¡± His granny and Grandma May were of the same age, but the former¡¯s health was far from that of the latter Grandma May was still physically strong and could fly around the world by ne withoutpany. She set her grandsons up with a spring in her step. Meanwhile, his granny had been buried six feet under for many years. ¡°Your granny is a true nobledy. She¡¯s different from someone impoverished like me.¡± ¡°Who said you¡¯re impoverished? You¡¯re also a true nobledy¡± Grandma Mayughed. ¡°When my grandfather was alive, my family was considered an influential family. But after I was born, my family fell into poverty. Now, even their mansion has been handed over to the state. ¡°On the other hand, your granny has been noble all her life. She can¡¯t bepared with an old boor like me.¡± Grandma May wrapped up her ptes. Duncan hurriedly got up and walked over to help her She did not need his help. She asked with interest, ¡°Duncan, why don¡¯t we have apetition? I haven¡¯t exercised my muscles in a long time.¡± Duncan immediately looked at her like he was begging for mercy. ¡°Give me a break, Grandma May. I wouldn¡¯t dare.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°I won¡¯t me you if I lose.¡± ¡°But you¡¯re old. If you end up hurting yourself, I¡¯ll be a viin to the York family It¡¯d be a tragedy if I couldn¡¯t visit the York manor again. You should ask Zachary instead.¡± Zachary¡¯s voice suddenly resounded. ¡°Don¡¯t drag me into this, Duncan.¡± He carried Sonny into the gazebo. ¡°Nana.¡± Grandma May hummed. Sonny greeted her politely, and she carried him with a smile. ¡°I missed you so much, Sonny¡± Serenity and Liberty followed behind. ¡°Nana.¡± ¡°Grandma May¡± Grandma May smiled joyously. ¡°You¡¯re all here. Hurry back inside the house. It¡¯s hot out here. It¡¯s only nine, but I feel so hot.¡± The old woman called everyone back into the house. She asked Zachary casually, ¡°Are the twodies of the Newman family still waiting outside?¡± ¡°The Newmandies?¡± Zachary recalled the two cars parked at the entrance and asked his nana, ¡°They¡¯re from the Newman family?¡± ¡°Yes, they¡¯re Camryn¡¯s eldest and second aunt. Her eldest aunt married into the Chandler family, and her second aunt became a Joyner. They¡¯re here to find your Aunt Rose. Since they¡¯re here for her, she has to agree to meet them before we can invite them inside.¡± Grandma May seemed like she did not care about anything, but the manor was still under her control. Unless it were something she did not want to know, she would find out about everything happening in the vi. Zachary said faintly, ¡°They were still waiting outside when I arrived. They must be up to something if they came over so early in the morning.¡± ¡°What¡¯s happening in the Newman family now?¡± Chapter 1552 Chapter 1552 Chapter 1552 Grandma May led Sonny out of the gazebo and asked Zachary. Zachary replied, ¡°These two aunts of Ms. Camryn, who are waiting outside now to meet Aunt Rose, keep cursing Ms. Camryn for being an ungrateful wench They just want to seize the opportunity to take over the Newman family. However, I skipped the specifics. That¡¯s up to Callum to worry about.¡± Camryn would only be his sister-inw in the future. Unless she begged him for help, he would not concern himself with the Newmans¡¯ affairs. ¡°Callum didn¡¯t interfere much, right? Camryn can handle herself. Callum just needs to stand behind her and be her backer.¡± Grandma May was full of trust in her chosen granddaughter-inw and believed that Camryn would be able to handle the Newman family assets well. Zachary did not speak. Grandma May quickly changed the topic. She did not have to worry about her second and third grandsons anymore. She had already chosen someone for them, so all left was for them to pursue their wives. However, she had not decided on a wife for her fourth and fifth grandsons. Her sixth grandson, Austin, and the ones that came after him could wait until they were older. There was no hurry. Boys generally mature slower than girls. If a man got married too early, he might not be able to afford the burden of a family. It was necessary to push for marriage only after a man had a sessful career. That way, he would be able to afford to raise a family of his own without relying on his parents and siblings for help. ¡°It¡¯s neither too hot nor cold now. Zack, it would¡¯ve been nicer for you to take them to our ind for a few days,¡± suggested Grandma May. Zachary replied, ¡°We came back to see you first, Nana, Where do you want to go?¡± ¡°I¡¯m just an old pile of bones. I won¡¯t go. You younglings go instead. Tell your brothers and go rx on the ind for a few days.¡± Grandma May still had to examine the wife candidates for her fourth and fifth grandsons. If there were no problems, she could finalize it. Her fourth and fifth grandsons in question shivered in fear. Zachary hummed. Grandma May turned and said to Serenity, ¡°Seren, let Zack bring you around while he¡¯s on holiday. It doesn¡¯t matter if you don¡¯t go to other ces, but you have to see our family¡¯s estates.¡± Serenity would be thedy of the Yorks in the future. She had to know about the York family¡¯s assets. ¡°Since you¡¯re back now. I¡¯ll ask your mother-inw to show you all the ounts of our family¡¯s assets. You don¡¯t have to take care of them now, but once you¡¯re more experienced and your mother-inw wants to retire, you¡¯ll have to take over After a pause, Serenity said, ¡°Nana. I-I¡¯m still young and have no experience. I can¡¯t take over all of a sudden.¡± To be honest, even though she was the missus of the York family, she still had not figured out how much property the York family had. She only knew that York Corporation and Wiltspoon Hotel belonged to her inws, and they had a large. horse racecourse. The couple wanted to go to the racecourse before, but Zachary suddenly thought she was pregnant while on the way, and they made their way to the hospital instead. Then, they ended up arguing. They never mentioned going to the racecourse again. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Serenity also knew that York Corporation had many branches all over the country, but she did not know where specifically. Grandma May¡¯s words caught her off guard.. She did not realize that she needed to help with her husband¡¯s family business. Furthermore, she did not know that her mother-inw still managed various industries owned by the York family. Her mother-inw usually looked pampered and idle. No one in the York family could be underestimated. ¡°Yes, it¡¯s hard to take over at once, so you should learn more from Tania when you have the time. This is your work and responsibility in the future. You also have to learn to deal with managing the personnel in Wildridge manor, ie and expenditure, and handling the ounts.¡± Zachary was worried that Serenity would be intimidated and said, ¡°Nana, that can wait until Seren and I have our wedding. Seren still has to worry about her vegetable farm investment now. When she¡¯s better at handling the vegetable farm, then let her take over slowly.¡± Grandma Mayughed and said, ¡°I¡¯m not asking Seren to take over everything all at once. I just want her to get a feel for it.¡± Chapter 1553 Chapter 1553 Chapter 1553 Zachary stopped talking. This was a responsibility Serenity had to take up since she married him. Serenity looked at her husband and saw him fall silent, then said, ¡°Then I have to take advantage of these days while Zachary is at home on holiday to properly get a feel for it. I can ask you guys questions if I don¡¯t understand anything.¡± She was aware that she had responsibilities as the missus of the York family. It just did not ur to her that she would have to manage the family industries. Furthermore, she did not expect she would have to manage the huge Wildridge Manor in the future. Serenity thought of the first time she met Jane and saw how thetter managed FC Manor. It seemed that she, like Jane, had to take over the management of some of her inws¡® assets. Jane seemed to have already taken over, but Serenity had not started yet. Jane had a strong background. Although she grew up in the Murphy family, which was not considered affluent, they were still rather well¨Coff. The whole family pampered Jane and raised her to be confident and open. Later, Jane found her biological parents. Her biological father was the head of the Lafayette family in Meadspring. Putting aside Lafayette¡¯s family fortune, Jane would still inherit tens of billions of dors just from the private properties belonging to her biological father. She was a bonafide multi¨Cbillionaire. If a person had money and status, they would have confidence. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. That was something Serenitycked. However, at the thought of Zachary and his family¡¯s trust in her, she became confident again. Even if she did something wrong when she took over, her inws would not me her. As long as she could learn from her mistakes and correct them, it would mean progress. ¡°Zack handles the external matters while you handle the internal ones. You¡¯re in charge of some small industries, such as the rental of shops and buildings and the operation of some chain stores. It¡¯s not much. Seren, I believe you¡¯ll quickly get the hang of it.¡± Grandma May smiled andforted Serenity so the younger woman did not feel too much pressure. The real business matters were left to Zachary to manage. However, Serenity also had to know the various trades that the York family was involved in. As husband and wife, she had to know a little about Zachary¡¯s affairs. She would be apanying him to various dinners in the future, so she could not bepletely ignorant. Serenity smiled. The pressure in her heart alleviated slightly. After they entered the house and chatted, Grandma May told Tania what she had just said. Tania said with a smile, ¡°I wanted Seren to learn how to take over a long time ago, but Zack lives outside with her and rarelyes back. I can¡¯t go to their home because I¡¯m afraid Zack will chase me out.¡± She was well aware of her son¡¯s domineering attitude¨Che liked to monopolize Serenity. If she dashed over to teach her daughter¨Cinw about taking over the family management, her son might me her for stealing his wife¡¯s attention and kick her, his very own mother, out of the house. Zachary was someone capable of doing such a thing. ¡°When Seren canpletely take over, I¡¯ll be able to travel around the world with Liam.¡± ¡°Mom, you need to teach me slowly,¡± Serenity said modestly. She had notpletely integrated herself into high society yet. Tania smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, if you don¡¯t understand, just ask me or your nana. Come upstairs with me first. I¡¯ll show you the books of ounts.¡± Serenity looked at Zachary. Zachary shrugged and said, ¡°This is something I can¡¯t help you with, honey. You have to do whatever Mom tells you to do.¡± Serenity looked at her sister, who said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t look at me either. This is your family business. and your responsibility. I can¡¯t help you.¡± Liberty was very happy. She was happy for her sister. Chapter 1554 Chapter 1554 Chapter 1554 The wedding was not held yet, but the York family had already started to make arrangements to get her sister involved in their family business. It was a sign of recognition and trust in her sister. Liberty was relieved. Her sister was much luckier than she was. In the beginning, Serenity got married to Zachary in order to make her feel at ease. The couple had no feelings back then, but now, they were loving each other deeply and living a blissful life. Most importantly, the York family was the richest family in Wiltspoon, but they never looked down on Serenity¡¯s background. This was exceptionally rare. Liberty was genuinely happy for her sister. Serenity took her mother¨Cinw¡¯s arm and said like a spoiled child, ¡°Mom, we just got back. Can you let me have some fun?¡± Tania poked Serenity¡¯s forehead dotingly and said, ¡°Haven¡¯t you had enough fun? The vegetable farm you invested in is also managed for you. As an investor, all you have to do is check in once in a while. Other than looking after your store, you¡¯re not that busy.¡± She looked at her son and joked, ¡°If I had to say what you¡¯re busy with, I¡¯d say you¡¯re busy being in love with Zack.¡± Serenity blushed deeply at her mother¨Cinw¡¯s teasing. ¡°Come on, let¡¯s go upstairs.¡± Tania did not care about her daughter¨Cinw acting spoiled and dragged Serenity to the second floor which had two study rooms. Therge study wasmonly used by Zachary and his father, while the small one was exclusive to Tania. Only Tania and Grandma May had the key to the small study. However, since Tania married into the family, Grandma May handed over all the managing of the house to her oldest daughter¨Cinw. She rarely set foot into the small study again. If others wanted to enter the small study, they had to get Tania or Grandma May¡¯s consent. Her second and third daughters¨Cinw knew about the family estate, but they did not have to worry about managing it. They were only in charge of their private businesses. As for their inws¡® huge family business, they would only help out when needed. Unless Tania asked for help, they would not casually intervene for fear that she would get suspicious and think that they wanted to fight for power. In any case, they had enough on their te with their family¡¯s private businesses. Their sons were also capable, so they did not have to worry much. Oh, they only needed to worry about their sons¡® marriages. However, with Grandma May around, they could still rx for a few years. If Grandma May could not persuade her grandchildren to marry, it would be even harder for them, mothers. their The person the nine young masters of the York family respected the most was Grandma May. They would ept whatever their nana did for them. Therefore, Grandma May¡¯s second and third daughters¨Cinw hoped that she would live a long life and help them push their sons to get married. They just had to wait to be mothers¨Cinw themselves. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Tania took Serenity up into the small study and opened the door with the key she carried with her. ¡°Your nana doesn¡¯t use this key anymore, so I¡¯ll give you her keyter. It¡¯ll be easy for you toe in and look at the books whenever you want.¡± Serenity nodded. After the mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw entered the small study, Tania instructed Serenity to close. the door. Serenity did as she was told. After closing the door, she turned around and surveyed the small study. Although it was called a small study, it was not small at all. In addition to a desk, there was a sofa set and several bookshelves stuffed with books of ounts. Serenity first thought that the books on the bookshelves were paperbacks, but upon closer look, she saw that they were ledgers. Some ledgers looked quite antique. They should be what the ancestors of the York family had left behind. ¡°This shelf of books was left behind by the York ancestors. You can flip through it and learn about how the family rose to fortune.¡± Chapter 1555 Chapter 1555 Chapter 1555 ¡°The old ledgers have been copied to new books so it¡¯s easier for reference.¡± Tania exined and pointed to theputer on the desk while saying to Serenity, ¡°There are too many ledgers to look through, so there¡¯s also a copy on theputer. It¡¯s much easier and faster to look it up on theputer.¡± Serenity looked at therge bookshelves, trying to suppress her shock, and asked her mother¨Cinw,¡± Mom, are these all our family¡¯s properties?¡± ¡°Yep.¡± Serenity took a pause before she said, ¡°Nana just mentioned the rental of some shops and houses, some chain stores, and small industries that needed my management.¡± At the sight of so many books, Serenity felt that she would not be able to get to the bottom of the York family¡¯s industries in just a few days of holidays. God, there were so many books! She did not study ounting, so she was just a novice. ¡°Your nana is right. It¡¯s just some small enterprises. You just need to know where it is and who¡¯s in charge of that business. Someone will make a report on whether it turns a profit or a loss every month, but your still have to know the details lest you be deceived. ¡°A little greed is harmless. You cannot expect everyone to be squeaky clean. As long as they don¡¯t overdo it, we¡¯ll just turn a blind eye. In general, they won¡¯t dare mess around. Their careers will be over if they¡¯re punished.¡± The York family was a huge name. The people managing the York family businesses did not dare mess around for fear of ruining their careers. Moreover, the York family had always treated its management with kindness. They would not be mistreated as long as they did their jobs well. Tania was worried that Serenity would be too uptight and serious, so she made a few remarks. Serenity nodded. ¡°I¡¯ll ask you for advice if I don¡¯t understand anything. ¡°Do I have to finish reading all these ledgers?¡± ¡°Take a look at the first three pages of each ledger for the time being. The first page lists the location of each business, which you have to memorize. The second and third pages are mostly the personnel. Their details and photos are included so you can easily identify them.¡± Serenity was speechless in her heart but did not let it show on her face. The Yorks had a fortune worth hundreds of billions and had many businesses. As the futuredy of the Yorks, she could not be intimidated by the number of properties her inws had. Tania was also paying attention to Serenity¡¯s reaction. She was quite satisfied to see that there was only shock in Serenity¡¯s eyes but not on her face. At least she would not look ignorant. Mrs. Stone must have trained her a lot. Mrs. Stone used to be a sessful career woman. Tania did not question the woman¡¯s ability in personally training Serenity. Tania handed Grandma. May¡¯s key to Serenity and said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry. Take your time. I took. several years myself to fully grasp the hang of it.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. She was from a wealthy family, but it took her several years to get fully up to speed. Serenity would most likely take longer. Serenity suddenly rxed. The pressure she felt lifted significantly. She was terrified that she was expected to get the hang of it in a few days. Fortunately, she had a few years. Tania hoped that Serenity would first bear a child for the York family, but she promised Zachary that she would never pressure Serenity into having one. She simply buried the idea in her heart and never voiced it. Serenity must be feeling pressure when there were yet to have signs after so long. Just one word from her mother¨Cinw would be enough to add pressure on her. Therefore, Tania held back her true thoughts. She simply said, ¡°You haven¡¯t had your wedding with Zack yet. After the wedding, you two still have to go on your honeymoon, but once that¡¯s over, you¡¯ll have to learn how to manage the household. You can still live the life you want during this period. I won¡¯t bother you.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Now that I know all this, I wouldn¡¯t dare to enjoy my life frivolously.¡± It was not easy being thedy of the house! Chapter 1556 Chapter 1556 Chapter 1556 ¡°If don¡¯t understand anything in the future, you can ask us or Zack. Zack handles matters outside the family, but he still knows about the affairs within the family.¡± you Serenity nodded. She was relieved that she could rely on Zachary. ¡°Will you be going downstairs now or staying here to read the ledgers?¡± Tania asked. Serenity thought about it and said, ¡°My sister and Mr. Lewis are here. Since there are guests, we should go downstairs first. There are too many books for me to finish reading in a short period of time. I¡¯lle in and read them when I¡¯m free tonight.¡°, Tania hummed, The mother¨Cinw and daughter¨Cinw left the small study together, and Tania locked the door of the study again. She added, ¡°The study is an important ce, and others are generally forbidden from entering, so we¡¯re responsible for cleaning up the study. I¡¯ll clean it up when you¡¯re not here, but if you move back to the manor with Zack in the future, I¡¯ll leave it to you to care for it.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± It was no wonder Zachary did not want to move back into the manor with her so soon. The manor being far away and it being inconvenient for him tomute to work was secondary. The main reason was that he did not want her to shoulder the burden of being thedy of the house so soon. He wanted her to have fun and more time for her happiness. Serenity was deeply touched by Zachary¡¯s good intentions. This man was really considerate of her and loved her immensely. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. When Tania and Serenity entered the small study, Callum¡¯s mother, Zachary¡¯s second aunt, woke up. She did not remember Brenda or Amy, but Mason said, ¡°They¡¯re Ms. Camryn¡¯s eldest and second aunts.¡± ¡°Camryn¡¯s aunts? Invite them in.¡± Rose sat down gracefully in front of the sofa and told Mason to inform the security post at the gate to let in the twodies who had been waiting for a long time. Rose did not have a deep impression of Camryn¡¯s three aunts. The Newman family was just a well¨C off family, but their gap with the Yorks was toorge. Newman Enterprise had its wealth today because Mr. Newman killed his younger brother, took over the company, and managed it diligently. Even so, the gap between a family with assets of a billion and hundreds of billions was still too great. Brenda¡¯s and Amy¡¯s inws could be said to be rich, and they would also attend parties with other ladies, but they were not on the same level as thedies of the York family. Thus, Rose had no impression of Brenda and Amy. They would not be able to enter Wildridge Manor were it not for them being Camryn¡¯s aunts. Mason responded respectfully. ¡°Thepany is on holiday these days. Callum¡¯s not back?¡± Rose asked. ¡°No, but Mr. Zachary and his wife are. Mr. Lewis came along too.¡± Rose hummed and said, ¡°Since Zack and Serenity are back, the others will follow suit. We¡¯ll have lunch at Tania¡¯s ce.¡± Mason responded respectfully again. He took out his phone and made a call to the security guard on duty at the main entrance of the manor. He informed the guard to let Brenda and Amy into the manor. There would be someone to escort the two women over to meet Rose. While waiting for them to arrive, Rose went to dine first. Chapter 1557 Chapter 1557 Chapter 1557 Camryn was the wife that Grandma May chose for Callum, so Rose paid more attention to the Newman family. She was a bit curious about the reason for the sudden visit of Camryn¡¯s two aunts. By the time Camryn¡¯s aunts came in, Rose had already finished her breakfast. She sat on the sofa in the hall, flipping through a fashion magazine. Mason personally led the twodies in.. ¡°Madam, Mrs. Chandler and Mrs. Joyner are here.¡± Rose hummed and closed the magazine before cing it on the coffee table. She stood up and looked at the two with a smile. ¡°Mrs. York.¡± Although the two Newman sisters mingle in the circle of wealthydies from time to time, they were unable to enter the circle of real noblewomen. They could not squeeze into the circle thedies of the Yorks belonged to. The sisters came over today without saying anything but were made to wait outside the manor for several hours. They came too early. They thought Rose was like them who had to get up early to prepare breakfast for the family. Unexpectedly, Rose had just woken up. They waited for several hours in vain. ¡°Please have a seat.¡± Rose looked at the siblings and wondered which one was the older one. Brenda pulled her younger sister over and introduced herself first. ¡°Mrs. York, I¡¯m Camryn¡¯s eldest aunt. My husband¡¯sst name is Chandler. This is my sister. Her husband¡¯sst name is Joyner.¡± them Rose smiled and waited for their introduction before asking them to sit. Then, she ordered the maid to serve tea, snacks, and fruit. After everyone exchanged a few courtesy greetings, Amy tugged on the hem of her elder sister¡¯s shirt. Brenda understood the gesture and smiled at Rose, saying, ¡°Mrs. York, we apologize for the unannounced visit today, but there¡¯s something we would like to mention to you.¡± Rose maintained her smile. In the sisters¡® eyes, her smile was truly graceful and noble. ¡°Please speak, Mrs. Chandler.¡± Brenda thought of Camryn gaining Callum¡¯s fancy and went mad with jealousy. How could a blind person obtain the favor of the second young master of the York family? Her daughter was just not as pretty as Camryn, but she was better in everything else. However, she could not even meet Callum.Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. The main point was that Camryn was not on their side. Camryn had Abel¡¯s blood, who was closest to Evelyn. Brenda and Amy did not help Camryn when she had a bad childhood. There was no affection between the aunts and their niece. Since they were on different sides, they could not let Camryn climb over them. If Camryn did not have Callum¡¯s backing, how would a blind person like her be able topete with them over the Newman family property? At that thought, Brenda did not beat around the bush but stated her purpose directly. ¡°The thing is, Mrs. York, I saw that my niece, Camryn, is obsessed with your eldest son. He¡¯s not some nobody, is he? My niece is too ambitious. She¡¯s just a blind girl. How can she be worthy of Mr. York? ¡°As her aunts, we¡¯ve tried to persuade her before, but she refused to listen. She¡¯s intent on using your son to elevate her status. Thus, we decided to be the baddies and talk to you to prevent that girl from falling deeper. ¡°Mrs. York, everyone knows about Camryn¡¯s condition. She¡¯s not a bad girl, but she¡¯s blind. How is she worthy of Mr. York?¡± Chapter 1558 Chapter 1558 Chapter 1558 Amy echoed, ¡°Yes, our Camryn is not worthy of Mr. York. I believe your family would not be able to ept that she¡¯s blind too. She even sued her own mother. She¡¯scking in virtue and isn¡¯t good enough for Mr. York.¡± It seemed that that was their purpose. Rose understood what the women came here for today. They could not stand to see Callum treating Camryn well, so they came here to wreak havoc and ruin Camryn¡¯s reputation in front of her. They wanted to use her to break up Callum and Camryn. Were they really Camryn¡¯s biological aunts? They could not stand to see Camryn doing well. ¡°Is that how you feel about your niece and Callum?¡± The smile slipped from Rose¡¯s face. ¡°Do you think Camryn is unworthy of Callum? Do you think shecks virtue? I heard about her suing her own mother. If her biological father truly did die at her mother¡¯s hand, then she did the right thing by choosing justice over family. ¡°I think that as her aunts, you should take her side instead. After all, her father is your brother. You all have the same parents, right?¡± Brenda and Amy were speechless. ¡°Or do you think your sister¨Cinw killed your brother because he deserved to die? I haven¡¯t heard of thete Mr. Newmanmitting any heinous crime that warranted death. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Besides, as children, can you really do nothing if you find out that your father died at the hands of your mother? Would you let your father die in vain? Although it¡¯s difficult to ce righteousness over family, if someone is able to do it, anyone with a conscience should support that person. Everyone is equal before thew.¡± The twodies were wordless. After a long time, Brenda said, ¡°Yes, Camryn put righteousness over her family, but putting that aside, she can¡¯t see. She¡¯s not worthy of Mr. York. We imposed on you today because we want to save our niece.¡± Amy said, ¡°That girl is very single¨Cminded when ites to rtionships. Once she falls in love with someone, she¡¯ll love them for the rest of her life. If it were anyone else, we wouldn¡¯t worry and try to be the viins.¡± In the end, they just could not stand to see Callum and Camryn being together. Their words were disparaging Camryn for being unworthy of Callum. However, how manydies in Wiltspoon were really worthy of the York family? It was enough as long as the York family did not dislike thedy. Rose said faintly, ¡°I understand what you mean. You just think that your niece is not good enough for my Callum, right?¡± ¡°Yes, Camryn is not worthy of Mr. York,¡± Brenda said honestly. Amy echoed, ¡°Our Camryn isn¡¯t bad, but she can¡¯t see. She¡¯s blind. Even ordinary people would dislike her because of that, let alone Mr. York.¡± ¡°Can¡¯t her eyes just be cured? Is there no chance of her regaining her sight?¡± The two women choked. They did not know if Camryn could regain her sight. They only knew that Evelyn had been trying to help Camryn treat her eyes. For ten years, she took Camryn all over the country to various hospitals. Whenever she heard of a good ophthalmologist, she would take Camryn to see them. However, even after ten years, Camryn was still blind. Amy said, ¡°Camryn has been blind for ten years and has seen countless eye specialists, but she still can¡¯t see. I think it¡¯s difficult for her to regain her sight.¡± After a moment of silence, Rose said, ¡°The York family has always been open¨Cminded. The elders won¡¯t meddle in the rtionships of the younger ones. If Callum likes Camryn, that¡¯s his business. All I have to do is wait to be a mother¨Cinw. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter if Camryn can¡¯t see. It¡¯s not like she needs to do anything after marrying into the York family. She just needs to be a good wife and be able to spend money.¡± Brenda and Amy were rendered speechless. Chapter 1559 Chapter 1559 Chapter 1559 After Rose finished speaking, she looked at Brenda and Amy. The Newman sisters did not know what to say. No matter how dumb they were, they could tell that Rose did not disdain Camryn¡¯s blindness. They also heard that the elders of the York family were very open¨Cminded, but they did not expect it to this extent. Callum was an excellent man, but not even his mother minded that he liked a blind woman. Mothers¨Cinw from rich families were supposedly difficult to get along with. ¡°Is there anything else you wish to say, Mrs. Chandler and Mrs. Joyner?¡± Rose added politely, ¡°If there¡¯s nothing more, I won¡¯t keep you any longer. I have to go out.¡± It was an expulsion order. Brenda quickly said, ¡°We don¡¯t need anything else. Since you don¡¯t disdain Camryn for her blindness, we won¡¯t meddle anymore. Sorry for bothering you, Mrs. York.¡± Then, she got up and motioned for Amy to stand. The sisters said goodbye to Rose and walked out of the magnificent hall under Mason¡¯s lead. Rose waited until they left before her expression sank. Not long after, Mason entered. ¡°Tell the security that there¡¯s no need to inform me if Mrs. Chandler and Mrs. Joynere again. I don¡¯t want to see them.¡± Mason answered respectfully. ¡°Has Callum note home?¡± ¡°Not yet, but the other young masters areing back one after another.¡± Rose hummed and picked up the magazine. She flipped through a few pages before tossing it back to the coffee table, then took out her phone and called Callum. Mason saw her on the phone and silently withdrew. Callum quickly answered his mother¡¯s call. ¡°Mom.¡± He was quite surprised. His parents rarely called him. They did not care about him unless something important happened. ¡°Zack and the others have already returned to the manor. Aren¡¯t youing back?¡± ¡°I won¡¯t be back for a while. Did something happen?¡± After a moment of silence, Rose said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. It¡¯s the holidays and all your brothers are back to get together. They learned from Mason that you weren¡¯t back yet, so I called to ask what¡¯s keeping you busy.¡± ¡°I¡¯m busy chasing your daughter¨Cinw.¡± Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Roseughed and said, ¡°If you fail to catch my daughter¨Cinw, don¡¯t tell anyone that you¡¯re my son. It¡¯ll be too embarrassing.¡± Callum was speechless. ¡°I met two individuals earlier.¡± Callum asked, ¡°Were they Camryn¡¯s aunts?¡± ¡°How did you know?¡± Chapter 1560 Chapter 1560 Chapter 1560 Callum said, ¡°Lucky guess. Her eldest and second aunts went to her housest night to make a stink, and Camryn ordered the bodyguards to drive them out. I was with Camryn then. They told me to my face not to be with Camryn, saying that she was blind. ¡°I¡¯m not surprised at all that they went to the manor to find you. What did they say to you, Mom?¡± ¡°In a nutshell, they just said that Camryn is unworthy of you. They said that not only was she blind, but she also sued her mother and harmed her stepfather. They also called her an ungrateful wench with no morals. They hoped I would stop you two from being together.¡± Callum guessed that Camryn¡¯s aunts would go to the manor. However, his expression still grew dark when he heard his mother¡¯s words. Not even he could bear to scold Camryn. However, her aunts kept scolding her, calling her blind left, right, and center. The next time he were to see them, he would not be a gentleman anymore. He would just tell the bodyguards to kick them out! Callum asked his mother, ¡°How did you refute them?¡± He did not think that his mother would listen to the two women. Rose said, ¡°I told them that we¡¯re very open¨Cminded parents. As long as you like Camryn, your dad and I won¡¯t intervene in your emotional affairs. I also said there¡¯s nothing wrong with Camryn being blind. ¡°She doesn¡¯t need to do anything after marrying into our family. All she needs to do is spend money.¡± Callumughed. ¡°You¡¯re awesome, Mom!¡± Rose snorted. ¡°Although you haven¡¯t seeded in wooing your wife, you¡¯re trying to pursue her. Camryn will be my daughter¨Cinw sooner orter. If I don¡¯t disdain her, how can they have the right to? They¡¯re her biological aunts, but they can¡¯t stand to see her doing well. Camryn is better off without them.¡± ¡°Camryn has three aunts, and only her youngest aunt, Evelyn, had a good rtionship with her father. Evelyn cares about Camryn. On the other hand, her two older aunts are on the same side as her uncle. They want to go back to their maiden home topete for the property. They just can¡¯t stand to see Camryn doing well.¡± ¡°They want toe home to fight for the property? Who does the Newman family property belong to now? If it¡¯s still under the names of Camryn¡¯s grandparents, then her aunts might be able to win over some shares.¡± Callum replied, ¡°Camryn said that the Newman family vi was left to her by her father. Thepany should also have been taken over by her father, but it fell into the hands of Mr. Newman after her father was killed. Now that I think about it, most of the Newman property should be under Mr. Newman now. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Mr. and Mrs. Newman got married when Camryn was just two years old. Even if they greatly disliked Camryn, she grew up by their side. It¡¯s only natural to form a rtionship between a ward and her caregivers. Camryn is Mr. Newman¡¯s stepdaughter and also has the right to inherit the property. Besides, the Newman Enterprise that Mr. Newman took over should have belonged to Camryn¡¯s father in the first ce.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t Mr. and Mrs. Newman have a son and daughter after getting married? Mr. and Mrs. Newman haven¡¯t been sentenced yet. If Mr. Newman is sentenced to death, it might be possible for his two sisters. to fight for the property after his death. However, he¡¯s not dead yet. Why did theye back to fight for property?¡± Callum said, ¡°That¡¯s why Camryn fell out with her two aunts. Now, Newman Enterprise is temporarily. controlled by Camryn and Dalton Mitchell. Dalton is the deputy managing director of thepany and was deeply trusted by Mr. Newman. However, he has known Camryn for many years and treats her like a younger sister. I only recently learned of their connection.¡± Rose was silent for a moment before saying, ¡°I didn¡¯t expect Camryn to have this trick up her sleeve. It¡¯s no wonder your nana chose her, Callum, since this has to do with your wife¡¯s family, you should help out more. Don¡¯t let your future wife suffer.¡± ¡°Of course. Don¡¯t worry, Mom. I won¡¯t let your future daughter¨Cinw suffer.¡± As expected of mother and son. Camryn had not epted Callum¡¯s feelings yet, but Rose already regarded her as her future daughter¨Cin w and protected her. She was afraid that Camryn would suffer losses in the fight over inheritance. ¡°Ask Zack if you need help, or tell me if you need me toe forward. I¡¯ll never let my future daughter¨C in-w be bullied by others.¡± Once again, the York family¡¯s protectiveness was vividly showcased. When Tania protected Serenity, thetter had already be the former¡¯s daughter¨Cinw. It was natural for a mother¨Cinw to protect her daughter¨Cinw. However, Camryn had not married into the York family yet, but Rose already treated her as a daughter¨Cin w and watched over her. Callum smiled. ¡°I¡¯m relieved by your words, Mom.¡± Deep down, he was actually a little worried that his parents would not be able to ept a blind woman as their daughter¨Cinw. His mother¡¯s words gave him assurance. Chapter 1561 Chapter 1561 Chapter 1561 ¡°Good luck. Let¡¯s see if you can marry Camryn by this year.¡± Callum said confidently, ¡°I¡¯ll definitely make you a mother¨Cinw by this year.¡± ¡°All right, go back to work. I¡¯m going to your uncle¡¯s ce.¡± Callum hummed and waited for his mother to hang up. After Rose finished talking to her son, she got up and left. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. The three sisters¨Cinw were very close and were like actual sisters. When they heard that Zachary and Serenity were back, Rose and her other sister¨Cinw, Sasha, went over to Tania¡¯s ce. The house was bustling with liveliness, Of course, the most popr person was the sweet and dashing Sonny. Rowan wanted to take Sonny out to fly a kite, saying that it was windy today. The best ce to fly a kite was on thewn. Zachary asked him, ¡°Have you finished your homework?¡± Rowan said smugly, ¡°I finished themst night. I wouldn¡¯t dare see you if I didn¡¯t finish my homework.¡± ¡°You finished it all in one night? Looks like you don¡¯t have enough homework.¡± Rowan would only start his junior year in September and was still currently a sophomore. In high school, only sophomores had it a little easier. ¡°I had plenty of homework. My teachers assigned homework for every subject. Zack, you don¡¯t know that I worked till midnightst night to finish all of them. I finished everything early because I wanted to y. with my brother during these three days of holiday.¡± Whenever there was a holiday in the past, he spent it doing his homework. If he did not finish them, his older brothers would not let him y. Thus, Rowan became smart. Every time he had a holiday, he would finish his homework on the night. before the holiday itself. It did not matter howte he had to stay up. That way, he would be able to y with his brothers. ¡°I¡¯ll send you several sets of test questionster. Do more practice and strive to get into a good. university. Don¡¯t embarrass us.¡± Rowan pulled a face upon hearing that. He hugged Sonny and said to Serenity. ¡°Serenity, reign in Zack a little. I finally have a three¨Cday holiday and finished my homework, but he wants to give me more test questions. Can¡¯t I rest and have a good time with my brothers?¡± Rowan clung to Serenity from the first time he saw her. Back then, when he saw his high and mighty eldest brother helping Serenity carry her bags, he knew that Zachary would fall into her hands sooner orter. Thus, he clung to Serenity tightly. Serenity said to Zachary, ¡°Rowan finished all his homework. Let him rx for the holidays. You at least have to let him y for a day. Studies are important, but he needs to have a good school¨Clife bnce. You can¡¯t keep forcing him to study. It¡¯ll be counterproductive sometimes.¡± Rowan echoed, ¡°That¡¯s right, that¡¯s right. Everyone is forcing me to study and putting pressure on me. All eight of my older brothers were at the top of their sses. God knows how much pressure I¡¯m under.¡± ¡°I¡¯m still sending the test questions to you. You don¡¯t need to revise today and do the questions, but you¡¯d better be a good boy and finish them in the next two days. Seren, you have a lot of test questions in your store, right? Take a few sets for him to do.¡± Rowan looked at Serenity as if pleading for help. He forgot that his sister¨Cinw owned a bookstore, so she had test questions for days. Even if there were test questions that were not avable in the bookstore, Serenity would probably be able to find a way him to do them. for Serenityughed. ¡°There are many indeed, but I¡¯m on vacation now and the store isn¡¯t open. Next time. then. I¡¯ll bring Rowan a few sets for the next holidays, during summer vacation. When he starts senior year, he can take any set of test questions from my store.¡± Rowan was speechless. ¡°Thank you in advance¡­ Serenity.¡± Fortunately, Serenity did not say that she would send him the test questions now. However, he had eight older brothers. If all eight of them sent him a few sets, they would pile up into a mountain on his desk. Chapter 1562 Chapter 1562 Chapter 1562 Rowan was scared by the thought of his study desk being filled with test questions. ¡°I¡¯ll just y for one day.¡± Rowan said conscientiously and did not dare ask for more holidays. His mom seemed ignorant of this and did not care about his cousins pressuring him with sets of test. questions. Rowan was the youngest among the cousins, and the youngest was the most favored. With eight excellent brothers watching over him, his mom was happy to do nothing. ¡°Sonny,e on, I¡¯ll take you out to fly a kite.¡± Rowan, who managed to ask for a day off, took Sonny out to go wild and y. Duncan was worried about Sonny and followed them. He wanted to continue to win Sonny over and make Sonny fonder of him. That way, he would soon be able to rece Hank and be Sonny¡¯s dad. ¡°Rose, I heard Camryn¡¯s aunts came to see you. What was it about?¡± Old Mrs. York asked her second daughter¨Cinw. Rose answered, ¡°Those two have no sense of propriety. They came to tell me that Camryn is blind and isn¡¯t good enough for Callum, wanting me to break them up. I wonder if they¡¯re Camryn¡¯s aunts at all.¡± Old Mrs. York asked further, ¡°How did you respond to them?¡± ¡°I told them that we don¡¯t mind that Camryn can¡¯t see. Even if she marries into our family, we don¡¯t need her to do anything as long as she knows how to spend money. Her aunts were pissed off.¡± Old Mrs. York was pleased with her daughter¨Cinw¡¯s reply. She said, ¡°Camryn isn¡¯t as weak as she appears. Her w is that she hasn¡¯t recovered her eyesight, but her eyes can be treated. Callum is waiting for the genius doctor¡¯s apprentice¨CDr. Carden¨Cto return to Annenburg, and then he¡¯ll ask her to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes.¡± Mrs. York asked with concern, ¡°Dr. Carden can cure Camryn¡¯s eyes, right? I heard Camryn¡¯s aunts say that she has been blind for a decade and has seen numerous eye specialists but nothing worked.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. It would be best if Camryn could regain her sight. If she were blind her whole life, Mrs. York would still ept it. As long as Callum liked her and did not mind, Mrs. York would have nothing to say as a mother¨Cinw, After all, it was not Mrs. York who would be getting a wife, but her son. Everything would be up to her son¡¯s wishes. ¡°Dr. Carden is the miracle doctor¡¯s only sessor. It is said that she¡¯s an expert in medicine and poison. Camryn lost her sight due to drugs. If even Dr. Carden is helpless¡­¡± Old Mrs. York did not go on. Everyone present understood what she meant. Serenity said, ¡°Nana, I¡¯ve asked Carnryn about it. She said she can see some light now but not clearly. She said a doctor used to treat her eyes and that it was effective, but unfortunately, that doctorter died of illness. Her treatment stopped after that.¡± Mrs. York was slightly relieved. She asked, ¡°In that case, there¡¯s a chance for her eyes to be cured. When will Dr. Carden return to Annenburg?¡± Zachary answered instead, ¡°Dr. Carden and the fourth son of the Johnsons are in love, and she¡¯s pregnant. now. Even if she returns to Annenburg, she won¡¯t travel far to treat patients so soon. We might only be able to ask her toe and treat Ms. Camryn¡¯s eyes after she¡¯s done with giving birth, the baby¡¯s sip and see shower, and her wedding to Mr. Johnson. ¡°We¡¯ll probably have to wait a few months.¡± Zachary was most informed about Dr. Carden. This was because he had the most dealings with the Johnsons. ¡°Camryn has waited for a decade, so a few more months will be nothing. We won¡¯t give up as long as there¡¯s a little hope. Even if there¡¯s no hope, I won¡¯t despise her,¡± Mrs. York expressed. Chapter 1563 Chapter 1563 Chapter 1563 Tania said, ¡°That child is pitiful. God won¡¯t forsake her Serenity did note from a prominent background but was healthy. Plus, her daughter¨Cinw made progress. Tania used to be a little dissatisfied with her, but she did not mind anymore when Camryn was used as aparison. Besides, Tania and Serenity developed a good rtionship after a long time together. Grandma May said, ¡°God is a powerful being. You young people should go out and y. You don¡¯t need to apany us old people.¡± She shooed her grandsons out to have fun. Zachary took Serenity out to look for Sonny. Liberty did not want to face Duncan, so she stayed in the house with the elders and listened to their conversation. It was a conversation among wives, so she could not chime in. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Even so, she did not feel inferior. She knew she had not entered the circle yet. Once she became sessful in the future, she would naturally be a part of the women of the high society. ¡°Liberty, join me for a walk.¡± Grandma May wanted to talk to Liberty. ¡°Okay.¡± Liberty smiled and stood up. She went forward to support Grandma May. Grandma May did not need Liberty¡¯s help anymore after she got up. Tania and the others watched the old and young leave. Afterward, Tania said to her sisters¨Cinw,¡± Seren¡¯s sister lost a lot of weight.¡± She felt that Liberty looked much better with a bit more weight on. Liberty had be skinny. ¡°Yes, she lost a lot of weight. I¡¯ve only seen her a few times, and my impression of her was when she was still plump. It¡¯s normal for her to lose weight after such a huge incident,¡± one of Tania¡¯s sisters¨Cin¨C law said. She was referring to Liberty¡¯s hospitalization. Liberty¡¯s weight had dropped to what it used to be before she was married. She apanied Grandma May out of the main house and walked toward the lotus pond at the old lady¡¯s request. It was huge. When the lotuses bloom in June, it would be a treat to admire them from the viewing point. At this time, small lotuses were budding. ¡°Liberty, you know about Duncan¡¯s liking for you, right?¡± Liberty was startled for a while before she asked, ¡°Grandma May, you know about it too?¡° Chapter 1564 Chapter 1564 Chapter 1564 Grandma May smiled and said, ¡°I could tell since long ago. Duncan didn¡¯t admit to liking you back then. He thought he liked Sonny instead and was only nice to you because you¡¯re Sonny¡¯s mom. Perhaps he liked Sonny at first and had slowlye to like youter on.¡± Liberty blushed and said, ¡°Grandma May, I have no feelings for Mr. Lewis. He confessed to me, but ! politely rejected him.¡± Grandma May asked, ¡°Is it because of Mrs. Lewis? She¡¯s not ill¨Cnatured, but her idea of an appropriate. match in terms of social status is deeply ingrained in her. Honestly, it¡¯s good for a married couple to be well¨Cmatched, so I don¡¯t me her for being so persistent.¡± ¡°I also think that a married couple should be well¨Cmatched. Mr. Lewis and I are not, and I¡¯ve never thought. of anything happening between us. I¡¯m only an ordinary tenant who rents his shop lot.¡± Liberty did not have the idea of rising to the top. Her sister could do that due to her good fortune, but she did not want to pursue such a life. Serenity was blessed such that her inws and their family never disliked her, but there was also huge. pressure on her. If she and Zachary did not have a good rtionship, Liberty dared say that she would not be willing to bear so much pressure and would have split up with Zachary long ago. They were ordinary people who only wanted to live normal lives. ¡°I¡¯ll tell you what I think. Other people might not be suitable for you, but Duncan is a good match. He comes from a wealthy family but was utterly rebellious in his youth. He ran away from home for many. years and suffered while he was outside. ¡°He can live the ordinary life you want with you. In terms of materials, he only fancies luxury cars and is very low¨Ckey in other aspects. He doesn¡¯t have extravagant pursuits, so it¡¯ll be extremely easy for him to blend into your life,¡± Grandma May noted. Liberty responded after some thought, ¡°Grandma May, I¡¯ve experienced a failed marriage. Hank and I knew each other for over a decade, were in love for a few years, and married for more than three years. Even so, we ended in a divorce. I no longer look forward to marriage and love. ¡°I don¡¯t need to marry again, and I don¡¯t need a man to rely on. My life is pretty good now. In addition to earning money, my biggest wish is for Sonny to be sessful. Marriage doesn¡¯t necessarily bring happiness to a woman. Most of the time, it is painful and exhausting. ¡°A woman is often the one who makes sacrifices in a marriage. I quit my job back then to care for our baby at home¨Cgive birth and take care of our child. I became a full¨Ctime housewife, but what did I get? I was disconnected from society and lived my life around my husband and child. I didn¡¯t have the time or mood to look presentable. ¡°Just like that, I identally became a in¨Cold housewife. I gave so much but they meant nothing to others. I was med for not coaxing our child when he cried, and I was condemned for not taking good care of him when he was sick. I was criticized for not raising our child well although I was always at home. ¡°When I spent money, I only spent on our small family, for my husband and my child, I was reluctant to spend money on myself. I was scolded by my husband when I asionally bought new clothes for myself. He questioned my need for new clothes since didn¡¯t have to socialize. ¡°Whenever I asked for some allowance, I was asked to spend less. I was used of buying too many things, which he thought must be where the money was all spent on. It was as if I was greedy for money. All in all, I always had to face my husband¡¯s criticisms. ¡°He knew I had no ie but asked me to split everything evenly. I sacrificed so much for our love, our marriage, and our family, but I was asked to pay for half of everything as though I took advantage of him. He wanted me to go out to work and make money, but he also wanted me to continue to be a free nanny. at home.¡± Liberty summed up her failed marriage and asked, ¡°Grandma May, if you were me, would you still believe in marriage and love? Such a thing can happen in the first marriage, let alone the second marriage. ¡°I don¡¯t want to remarry¨CI won¡¯t consider getting married at least in these few years. Grandma May, if Mr. Lewis doesn¡¯t give up, I¡¯d like you to help introduce me to a man who can act with me so that Mr. Lewis can give up on the idea.¡± Grandma May said, ¡°A woman does give a lot in an ordinary marriage. It¡¯s fine if the husband understands, but it¡¯ll be disappointing if he doesn¡¯t. Perhaps this is why many women don¡¯t want to get. married. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. ¡°There¡¯s no rush now. You can give Duncan a chance first. If you can¡¯t ept him after all that he does. and want him to give up, I¡¯ll arrange for someone to act with you. I just feel that Duncan and Hank are different.¡± Libertyughed at herself and replied, ¡°I¡¯m traumatized after what happened. Mr. Lewis is great now but¡­ Who knows? Hank used to be great as well. I never imagined us to be divorced.¡± Things also became ugly before the divorce. Hank became wild and cheated on Liberty with Jessica after he was slightly sessful in his career and earned some money. Duncan was richer than Hank and came from a wealthy family. Liberty could not believe that Duncan¡¯s feelings for her would never change. Chapter 1565 Chapter 1565 Chapter 1565 Grandma May sighed and stopped speaking for Duncan. After all, she could not guarantee that Duncan would treat Liberty well for the rest of their lives. ¡°Are the Browns still pestering you?¡± Grandma May changed the topic and asked Liberty with concern. ¡°Seren asked our grandparents toe and rented a ce for them on the same floor as the Browns. The Browns have to pass by my grandparents¡® unit every time they go out. With my grandparents in the way, my ex¨Cinws rarely appear in front of me nowadays.¡± The olddy chuckled and said, ¡°That¡¯s a good idea. I don¡¯t have a good rtionship with your grandparents, but you¡¯re still their granddaughter. They have conflicts with and grudges against the Browns, to begin with, so they¡¯re helping you.¡± ¡°Seren gave my grandparents the right amount of money from the rent my uncle pays. She also provided them with a rental unit and paid for their food, so of course, they¡¯ll help me.¡± Liberty always felt that her grandparents would not help her if they would not benefit from it. Grandma Maymented after a moment of silence, ¡°It¡¯s worth it to do them a little favor to solve your problem. Besides, they¡¯re your grandparents.¡± Liberty fell silent for a while. She said after some thought, ¡°Sometimes, I think I¡¯m useless as a sister, always needing Seren to make arrangements and sacrifice for me.¡± Grandma May responded, ¡°You can¡¯t say that. After both your parents died, if Seren didn¡¯t have you as her sister, she would¡¯ve probably been sent to an orphanage. You can imagine what kind of life she would¡¯ve lived. You¡¯re the older sister and a mother to her. ¡°Sisters should help each other without being overly concerned. Seren is extremely grateful to you.¡± She took Liberty¡¯s hand and patted the back of it. ¡°Liberty, you¡¯re a good person. Even if you had been lost, you¡¯ve walked out of it. Trust that you¡¯ll live a better life.¡± ¡°Grandma May, thank you. I will.¡± When Liberty first resigned from Lewis & Co. back then and thought of starting her own business, she hoped to be rich one day. Even if it was not for herself, she wanted to do it for her sister and her son. If she became rich and sessful, she would be her sister¡¯s backing. If her sister was bullied, she could speak up for her. Though, the Yorks treated Serenity very well. Serenity and Zachary would still asionally have conflicts. Liberty always felt useless as she could not be her sister¡¯s backbone. Serenity was always afraid of letting her know when she and Zachary were at odds and not on talking terms. Perhaps Serenity did not want Liberty to worry. However, Liberty felt that she was useless. Even if she knew, she could not help her sister. ¡°Let¡¯s go look at the lotuses.¡± ¡°We¡¯re not going to see them fly kites?¡± Grandma May answered with a smile, ¡°With so many people keeping Sonnypany, you can be at ease. Rowan is good at taking care of kids. Besides, Duncan¡¯s also with them.¡± Since Duncan was present, he would be there for Sonny no matter what happened. ¡°Duncan likes Sonny very much. I watched him grow up, and I rarely see him treat a child so well. Hist fondness for Sonny definitely isn¡¯t because of you,¡± Grandma May added. Liberty believed what the old woman said. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. When Duncan started showing his liking for Sonny, Liberty was still a plump woman who weighed more. than two hundred pounds. He could not have liked her at that time. Nheless, Duncan was certainly nice to her in the beginning because of Zachary. Perhaps he developed feelings for herter on. Grandma May and Liberty went to the lotus pond to look at the flowers. Some had bloomed, but most of them were still budding. On the bigwn, Rowan taught Sonny how to fly a kite. Once the kite flew, he passed the string to Sonny for him to grab it. Following that, Rowan went to fly his own kite. Duncan watched from the side and shifted his gaze to Sonny. Chapter 1566 Chapter 1566 Chapter 1566 ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny pulled the kite string and walked toward Duncan. Duncan smiled and pulled Sonny into his arms. He reached out to hold the kite string for Sonny and asked, ¡°Are you happy?¡± ¡°Yeah. Row said he¡¯d bring me to y in the children¡¯s ygroundter,¡± This was Sonny¡¯s second time in Wildridge Manor. He remembered that his uncle¡¯s house had a big children¡¯s yground and that it was fun. Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Duncan said dotingly, ¡°I can also bring you there.¡± ¡°Dunc, you¡¯re an adult, but Row isn¡¯t one yet. I¡¯ll be happier if he goes with me.¡± Adults were not as yful as children. The little one knew the difference very well. Duncan caressed Sonny¡¯s head and asked with a smile, ¡°Sonny, you don¡¯t want me anymore now that you have Row, huh?¡± Sonnyined, ¡°You only know how to stack blocks, Dunc.¡± Duncan was speechless. He liked Sonny, but he admitted that he was not doing a good enough job at pleasing Sonny, mainly because he had never liked a child like this before he knew Sonny. ¡°Sonny,e here. Let¡¯s see whose kite flies higher,¡± Rowan shouted after his kite took off. Sonny immediately pulled his kite and ran toward Rowan. Duncan grinned and watched. He was thinking about expanding the vi he always lived in and building a children¡¯s yground so that Sonny could y in it in the future. When Zachary and Serenity saw this, they did not walk over to disturb them from flying kites. The couple strolled hand in hand along a wooded path. No one would be insensible enough to disturb the loving couple.. ¡°Zachary.¡± Zachary turned to look at Serenity. Serenity continued, ¡°Nana told me about my duties. I thought there were just a few stores, but I was shocked when I saw the ounts. The few bookshelves are full of ount books. Do all women in your family manage these?¡± Zachary chuckled and answered, ¡°Not really. Only the head missus manages these. These are public and belong to the entire family. Some belong to our small family. I¡¯ll slowly tell you about our small family¡¯s businesses when you¡¯re more familiarized with everything.¡± Serenity responded, ¡°I thought you were in charge of everything that makes money¡­¡± ¡°I¡¯m in charge of the big businesses while you¡¯re in charge of the small ones.¡± Serenity was speechless. ¡°There are so many books of ounts, yet you say they¡¯re small businesses?¡± ¡°They¡¯re small businesses aspared to what York Corporation deals with. If the shops are self- operated, only a few hundred thousand dors will be earned in a year. At most, it¡¯ll be more than at million dors. Those that aren¡¯t self¨Coperated are rented out. The monthly rents are about 8,000 to 10,000 dors, amounting to roughly 100,000 dors a year. ¡°Chain stores earn a little more, but they¡¯re not worth mentioning aspared to York Corporation. These small businesses are given to you to manage. The ie will mainly be used for internal expenses, so treat it as your allowance as my wife.¡± Simply the allowance was shocking.¡± Although the money earned from each store in a year was not much to Zachary, the Yorks had many stores. In Serenity¡¯s words, there were many ount books on the fewrge bookshelves, which meant. that there was a lot of money. The rent collected each month alone was money that could never be earned by ordinary people in a lifetime. Chapter 1567 Chapter 1567 Chapter 1567 Zachary said, ¡°You don¡¯t have to put too much pressure on yourself. Nana told you that, but the handover will be at least a few yearster. Even the smartest and greatest missus in charge will take a few years to fully take over everything. ¡°Look at the ount books when you have time so you can learn where the properties are and what businesses are in operation. You can take your time with the rest.¡± Serenity nodded and responded, ¡°That¡¯s what Mom said. She said I¡¯ll be able to take over after two or three years.¡± ¡°It¡¯s thanks to the missus in charge every term that the number of stores and properties grew. If the money earned isn¡¯t fully spent, it can be used to repurchase stores and houses, or it can also be invested in other financial products. In any case, money is used to generate more money.¡± Serenity replied, ¡°I¡¯m still under a lot of pressure after hearing what you said. I dare not say that I have an eye for investment.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°It¡¯s not difficult. You just need to purchase a few stores. As long as the location is good and it has the potential to be developed, you can buy it. We can also buy properties with money out of our pockets. Unlike other families, we won¡¯t stop women from investing or doing business.¡± In other rich families, women mostly stayed at home. They were not allowed to put themselves out there and run businesses. To those families, having their women running businesses outside was a symbol of their ipetence The Yorks did not have such rules. It might seem like Tania and her two sisters-inw rarely showed themselves in public, but in fact, they were involved in any profitable industry. Among the Yorks, Rowan was still a minor and was the only one who only had a few properties under his name. He bought them using the money he saved from his allowance every year. Rowan was ahead of his peers. After all, many people struggled for a lifetime only to buy one house. Apart from Rowan, everyone else in the Yorks had considerable private businesses. Not to mention Zachary-he had numerous big and smallpanies that belonged to him alone. Serenity smiled and noted, ¡°I¡¯m currently not investing in anything except for the vegetable farm, which I simply followed Elisa. I also have to learn more-I can¡¯t be the worst head missus in your family.¡± Zachary replied to her dotingly, ¡°You have me. As long as I¡¯m here, I won¡¯t let you be the worst head missus in our family. I told you that I¡¯ll transfer all my properties to you so you can manage them, but you refused. ¡°How about you start by helping to manage our private properties as a couple?¡± ¡°Do we have a lot of private properties?¡± ¡°Not really.¡± Serenity could not believe his words. His definition of ¡°not really¡± could be shocking. Zachary led Serenity into a summer house and sat in front of a wooden table. Serenity could not help but lean her head on his shoulder. ¡°Babe, only now do I feel like I¡¯m blending into your family.¡± This was because her inws started to arrange for her to take over the internal family businesses. Zachary embraced her and said, ¡°It was my bad for hiding my identity in the beginning as I didn¡¯t dare let you know all this. You wanted a divorce when you found out who I am¡­ Now that things are good, I¡¯m afraid to let you discover so quickly that you have a heavy burden, afraid that you¡¯d want to leave again. ¡°Seren, in our family, goods can¡¯t be returned once sold. You have to tolerate me for life whether I¡¯m good or bad.¡± Serenity was amused by him. ¡°You¡¯re handsome and rich, and yet you¡¯re afraid of being returned? Even if you¡¯re returned a hundred times, manydies will still line up to marry you.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want anyone else except you.¡± Zachary immediately expressed himself. He only wanted Serenity. In rtionships, he was unfeeling and would not be easily moved. Once he was moved, he would not easily change his mind. Thinking of being unfeeling, Julian came to Zachary¡¯s mind. ¡°Seren, do you still remember what Julian said about his hypoactive sexual desire disorder?¡± Chapter 1568 Chapter 1568 Chapter 1568 Serenity left Zachary¡¯s shoulder and looked at him. She seemed gossipy ¡°What did the psychic say? Can Jul:an be treated? Or did he lie about it?¡± ¡°ording to Mr Bucham¡¯s investigation, Julian didn¡¯t lie about it. I don¡¯t think he¡¯d have the guts to Serenity asked, ¡°So he really has hypoactive sexual desire disorder?¡± Zachary nodded Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Juan¡¯s update came from Zachary pestering and asking his nana Then What did the psychic say?¡± Jn was also an excellent man, but it was unfortunate that he had hypoactive sexual desire disorder A person with such a disorder could only depend on fate to find a partner and live a normal life Otherwise, Julian would be someone who was only living in the shell of a man. He was normal in all aspects but did not react to women. Zachary answered, ¡°The psychic said he can meet a destined person, but that person hasn¡¯t appeared yet, so he needs to wait.¡± ¡°Julian is about the same age as Mr. Lewis, right? Does he still have to wait? Wouldn¡¯t he be forty by the time he gets married and has children?¡± Serenity asked. ¡°It probably won¡¯t take that long. I¡¯m guessing it¡¯ll happen in the next two years. Duncan is slightly older than Julian, but I somehow think that Julian will get married before Duncan.¡± Zachary¡¯s sister-inw had no feelings for Duncan at all. She was also hurt in her past rtionship, so it would not be easy to pursue her. Besides, Mrs. Lewis was also in the way. Serenity kept quiet when she thought about her sister and Duncan. ¡°Babe, is that psychic that great?¡± ¡°He wouldn¡¯t dare spout nonsense to my nana if he isn¡¯t skilled.¡± Serenity chuckled and said, ¡°You said he was talking nonsense. Thest time we met, I noticed you were quite polite to him.¡± Zachary kissed her on the cheek and grinned. ¡°That¡¯s because he said we¡¯ll have a son and a daughter. Who doesn¡¯t like to hear nice words? Our family wishes for a daughter the most.¡± Serenity touched her t belly and said, ¡°Now, there are only intestines inside. Our children are still sitting on the clouds in the sky.¡± People said that children sat on the clouds in the sky to choose their mothers. No child had chosen Serenity to be their mother yet. Zachary turned her face toward him and lowered his head to kiss her red lips. After giving her a deep kiss, Zachary lovingly caressed her glittering red lips with his big hand and said in a low and hoarse voice, ¡°Seren, whatever will be in life, will be. Otherwise, we shouldn¡¯t push it The psychic said we¡¯ll have a son and a daughter. I believe that it¡¯ll happen one day. The psychic also said that Serenity will show signs after fall. After fall happened to be when they would hold their wedding¡­ ¡± Perhaps Serenity would show signs after their wedding, or she might be pregnant before. The early stage of pregnancy would not affect their wedding. ¡°I hope what the psychic said wille true,¡± Serenity expressed. Zachary noted, ¡°He has tricks up his sleeve.¡± In fact, instead of the psychic, Zachary trusted his nana more. If his nana trusted the psychic, he must be an expert. ¡°Don¡¯t think too much. I told you that we should go with the flow. The more you think, the more stressed you are, and the more difficult it¡¯ll be to get pregnant. As long as we have no health problems and our genes don¡¯t conflict with each other, it¡¯ll only be a matter of time before we have children.¡± Chapter 1569 Chapter 1569 Chapter 1569 Serenity thought of her main task at the moment, which was to first figure out all of her inws¡¯ family properties. This was to prepare her to be the head missus in the future. With her attention distracted, she would not dwell on the matter of being pregnant or not. Zachary embraced her again and whispered a few words in her ear. Serenity blushed right away and pinched his thigh. Zachary yed along and shouted, ¡°Honey, are you trying to kill your husband?¡± ¡°Come on, I didn¡¯t even use force. You screamed like a little girl,¡± Serenitymented. Zacharyughed out loud. Meanwhile, at the Stones, Mrs. Stone was helped into the house by the housekeeper and a strange man. When Elisa, who was about to go out, saw this, she threw her bag onto the sofa and quickly went forward She asked anxiously, ¡°Mom, what happened to you?¡± She remembered that her mom mentioned going out for a walk to get some fresh air. Mrs. Stone was assisted to the sofa. She sat and answered, ¡°I identally fell and sprained my foot. Luckily, Mr. Reading saw me and sent me back.¡± Elisa squatted in front of her mom and saw that her mom¡¯s clothes were soiled. It was true that she had taken a fall. After that, Elisa looked at her mom¡¯s foot and noticed that it was slightly red and swollen. Her mom seemed to have sprained it. As such, Elisa asked the housekeeper to bring the ointment. She stood up and thanked the strange man, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Reading.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Mr. Reading was in his early thirties and looked rather handsome. Elisa found him to look familiar, but she did not know him at all. Given that Mr. Reading saw her mom spraining her foot in the surrounding area, he must also live here. Elisa had never met Mr. Reading but thought he looked familiar. Mr. Reading responded, ¡°You¡¯re wee. Anyone who saw your mom would¡¯ve sent her home.¡± ¡°Elisa, Mr. Reading is Zachary¡¯s cousin. They¡¯re of the same age,¡± Mrs. Stone exined. Mr. Reading was Tania¡¯s nephew from her paternal family. The Readings were a wealthy family but were very low-key. If not for Tania marrying into the Yorks and bing the missus in charge, very few people paid attention to the Readings. It was mainly because they never attended the parties of the high society in Wiltspoon, so only a few people knew them. Elisa was very surprised. She had liked Zachary for many years and openly confessed her love to him, but she never knew his cousin. No wonder she felt that Mr. Reading looked familiar. It was not that she had seen him before, but Mr. Reading and Tania shared some resemnce. After all, they were aunt and nephew. Elisa had seen Tania, so she feit that Mr. Reading looked familiar when she saw him. ¡°Mr. Reading, thank you so much. Please have a seat.¡± Elisa now knew that Mr. Reading was Zachary¡¯s cousin, so he was considered a close rtive. Besides, Mr. Reading also sent her mom home when she sprained her foot. Hence, Elisa was nice to him, and she was full of gratitude. Mr. Reading said, ¡°Ms. Stone, I have something to do, so I won¡¯t be staying. I¡¯ll visit again some other day when I have time.¡± ¡°Mr. Reading, you should sit and have a cup of tea.¡± Mr. Reading politely refused the kindness of the mother and daughter. Mrs. Stone said to her daughter, ¡°Elisa, see Mr. Reading off.¡± Elisa hummed. She escorted Mr. Reading out. Chapter 1570 Chapter 1570 Chapter 1570 Along the way, Elisa kept thanking Mr. Reading. Mr. Reading smiled and said, ¡°It was no trouble at all. Our families are considered rtives, so you don¡¯t need to be so courteous, Ms. Stone.¡± He stopped at the vi entrance and looked at Elisa. Afterward, he reached into the hidden pocket of his suit and retrieved a small box of business cards he carried with him before pulling one of the cards out for her. ¡°Ms. Stone, this is my business card.¡± Elisa took the card and looked at it. Mr. Reading¡¯s name was Andrew Reading. He was the COO of Reading Group, and the CEO was his elder brother. After epting Andrew¡¯s business card, Elisa said, ¡°Thanks for sending my mom home, Mr. Reading. I¡¯ll treat you to a meal someday when you¡¯re free.¡± Andrew grinned. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll be leaving first, Ms. Stone.¡± Elisa walked him to his car and waved him goodbye. She stood at the same spot to watch him drive away. Remy, who just came out of the vi next door, happened to see this. He did not return to FC Manor for the holidays. He told his parents that his newly bought vi needed to be renovated again. He had to keep an eye on the work, lest the renovator makes a mistake. As such, he would not be going home this holiday. In fact, Remy wanted to take advantage of the holiday to pursue Elisa and go on a date with her. After he confessed to Elisa, she neither epted nor rejected him. Remy knew he had a chance. He was d to have spent some time together with Elisa. He could feel that she was genuinely happy with him. The iron must be struck while it was hot. Remy did not want to miss the opportunity. FC Manor was his home, so he could go back whenever he wanted. His family would be even happier if he could bring Elisa back too. Remy had only told his big brother that he liked Elisa, and Ben was very supportive of Remy¡¯s pursuit of Elisa. Moreover, Ben intended to expand their business in Wiltspoon. That way, Remy could stay in Wiltspoon for a long time, which would be better for him to pursue his future wife. At this time, Remy was standing in front of his vi. He saw Andrew¡¯s car drive by and also saw what he looked like. Remy was slightly relieved because he regarded Andrew as not as handsome as he was. He did not have much of an impression of Andrew. Simr to Elisa, he only thought that Andrew looked familiar. After Andrew drove away, Remy walked toward Elisa. Elisa saw him too and was in no hurry to go back inside. She waited for him to approach her. ¡°Elisa, who was that man just now?¡± Earlier on, Elisa and Andrew were talking and smiling. Remy was on guard, afraid of having a love rival without his knowledge. Elisa was a nicedy, but due to her character, she had a bad reputation in the high society of Wiltspoon. Remy thought that those people were jealous of her and deliberately wanted to ruin her reputation. It happened that Elisa did not care about those things, causing many people to never consider her as a wife candidate. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. This was a good thing for Remy. If nobody realized the good in her, he would not havepetitors and would have a greater chance of seeding. Elisa answered, ¡°That was Mr. Reading, Zachary¡¯s cousin. You might not know him-even I didn¡¯t know him until my mom introduced him. The Readings keep an extremely low profile in Wiltspoon. Everyone¡¯s understanding of them is that their daughter is the Yorks¡¯ head missus.¡± Remy came to a sudden realization. ¡°Ah, that was Mr. York¡¯s cousin. No wonder I felt that he looked familiar. Mr. Reading and his aunt look alike.¡± He had seen Tania several times and had a deep impression of her. ¡°Why did Mr. Readinge over?¡± Mr. Reading was quite focused when he looked at Elisa just now. Remy was worried that he would fall in love with her at first sight. Elisa exined, ¡°My mom went out for a walk but fell and sprained her foot. Mr. Reading happened to have walked past and seen her, so he sent her home.¡± Remy asked, ¡°Does Mr. Reading live here too?¡± Chapter 1571 Chapter 1571 Chapter 1571 Elisa answered, ¡°I think so, but I¡¯ve never met him by chance. The Readings are too low-key.¡± Remy hummed. He had never paid attention to the Readings either. The Readings¡¯ business was not in Wiltspoon, and there was no coboration between them and FC & Co. Their whole family kept a low profile, so Remy would not pay attention to them. Now, Remy had to watch out for Mr. Reading. For some reason, he felt that Mr. Reading would be his love rival. Elisa did not know that Remy was already on guard, preventing Mr. Reading from bing his love rival. She asked Remy, ¡°Are you not going home this holiday?¡± 1 Remy answered, ¡°It¡¯s just for a few days, so I¡¯m toozy to go back and forth. Besides, I have to keep an eye on the renovation here.¡± He looked deeply at Elisa and added, ¡°I¡¯d prefer to go back with you.¡± Elisa smiled and did not answer. Nothing had happened between the two of them yet. It was still early for them to meet each other¡¯s parents. ¡°I¡¯ll go back inside first to help apply some ointment for my mom.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. This time, Remy was not thick-faced and did not follow Elisa inside. He stood at the vi entrance and watched her enter the main house before he turned around and walked back. A few minutester, Remy drove out alone in his car. He returned after about half an hour. Once he was back, he parked his car directly in front of the Stones¡¯ vi and honked. Soon, the Stones¡¯ maid came out. She saw that it was Remy and opened the vi gate for him to drive his car in. Remy parked his car and then took the supplements which he had gone out to buy. He went into the house after the maid asked him to. He wanted to visit his future mother-inw, who sprained her foot, but he could note empty- handed. This was why he did not insist on following Elisa into the house earlier-he had to go and buy some supplements. Ointment had been applied on Mrs. Stone¡¯s foot. Mrs. Stone kept telling her daughter about how good Mr. Reading was. She said she could not have come home if Mr. Reading had not been kind enough to stop his car and send her home. She forgot to bring her phone when she went out just now. Clive and his wife looked at each other. They were grateful that Mr. Reading sent their mom home. However, they felt that something was wrong when Mrs. Stone overly praised Mr. Reading. Alice discreetly nudged her husband, who was next to him, and whispered, ¡°Clive, don¡¯t you think that Mom is excessively praising Mr. Reading? She seems to have something else in mind.¡± Although it was not nice of Alice to doubt her mother-inw, she could not help but suspect that her mother-inw had deliberately nned everything-spraining her foot, chancing upon Mr. Reading, and being sent home by him. Mr. Reading was probably unknowingly used by Mrs. Stone. What was Mrs. Stone¡¯s purpose in doing this? Alice looked at her sister-inw, who had not realized what was going on. If Alice guessed it right, her mother-inw did that to create an opportunity for Elisa and Mr. Reading to meet and see if there would be sparks between them. After all, Alice knew very well that her mother-inw was against Elisa marrying off to a farawaynd. It was definitely possible for Mrs. Stone to set up something and introduce a few love rivals for Remy to stop Elisa from marrying into the Johnsons, who lived far away. In fact, Alice admired Remy and thought that he was a good match for her sister-inw. It was mainly because Elisa and Remy got along well. Chapter 1572 Chapter 1572 Chapter 1572 Nevertheless, Alice knew her inws would be reluctant for Elisa to be married far away. As excellent as Remy was, he was from Annenburg, which was far from Wiltspoon. It would take about three hours one way by ne If the Johnsons Oved in Wiltspoon, and Remy liked Elisa, everyone in the Stones would be extremely sst sfied There would not have been such an incident. Clive punched his wife¡¯s hand, suggesting that she should not expose their mom even if she saw through They should wait and see what would happen. Clive loved his sister the most He felt that Remy was a great man but was also reluctant for her sister to be married off far If her sister had another option in Wiltspoon, he would not support Remy in pursuing her no matter what As for Remy, he was very pressured. Even if he and Elisa loved each other, it would not be easy for him to win her over. Elsa did not have other thoughts. She thought that her whole family should be grateful to Andrew for sending their mom home. She said after listening to her mom¡¯s words, ¡°Mom, Mr. Reading helped you and sent you home. We¡¯re also very grateful to him. I told him that I¡¯ll treat him to a meal one day when he¡¯s free to thank him for sending you home.¡± Mrs. Stone replied to her, ¡°That¡¯s right. Invite him over for a meal so that we can show our sincerity. It¡¯ll be a good time for me to thank him in person again. I hadn¡¯t been that helpless for decades-I felt really weak at that time. ¡°Luckily, I met Mr. Reading. He didn¡¯t ignore the situation just because it didn¡¯t concern him. Instead, he stopped his car and got out to ask what happened to me. After that, he even sent me back.¡± Mrs. Stone praised Andrew as much as she could. Elisa was naive and did not know her mom was tricking her. She responded, ¡°Okay, then I¡¯ll invite him to our home for a meal so you can thank him properly. Everyone in the family is thankful, so you don¡¯t need to overpraise him, Mom.¡± ¡°He saved me, so why can¡¯t I praise him? Besides, he¡¯s an excellent man. It¡¯s just that the Readings have always kept a low profile and never attended parties of the high society, so they¡¯re not well- known,¡± Mrs. Stone said. The Readings thought that Tania would easily attract attention after marrying into the Yorks-the richest family-and bing the head missus. As her maiden family, they could only be low-key so as not to cause her trouble. 1 wouldn¡¯t have paid attention to the Readings if Mr. Reading hadn¡¯t helped you today, Mom. It feels as if Zachary and his cousins don¡¯t interact much,¡± Elisa noted. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°Would you know if they actually interacted?¡± Elisa was speechless. In the past, Zachary did not even look her in the eye, let alone talk to her. Elisa learned to let go and gave her blessings to Zachary and Serenity. Moreover, Serenity was her little aunt¡¯s daughter, so she and Serenity were cousins. When Zachary addressed Elisa as his cousin for Serenity¡¯s sake, the interaction between them increased slightly. Indeed, Elisa would not know if Zachary often interacted with his rtives. ¡°Madam, Mr. Johnson is here.¡± A maid brought Remy into the house. Mrs. Stone was still praising Andrew a moment ago. When she heard that Remy was here, the smile on her face disappeared, and she looked serious instead. Elisa looked at Remy. She came to a realization when she saw Remy carrying many supplements with him. No wonder he did not follow her into the house to visit her mom when he heard that her mom had sprained her ankle. It turned out that he did not want to visit empty-handed. Remy was attentive. He truly valued Elisa, which was why he valued her family. ¡°Mrs. Stone, I heard from Elisa that you sprained your foot, so I came to see you.¡± Remy went forward with the supplements, and Elisa got up to take them from him. ¡°You could¡¯ve just come. Why did you bring so many things over?¡± ¡°They¡¯re for your mom¡¯s recovery,¡± Remy answered with a gentle smile. Elisa ced the things he brought in front of her mom, ¡°Mom, Remy bought a lot of supplements for you.¡± Mrs. Stone pursed her lips and thanked Remy indifferently, ¡°Mr. Johnson, you¡¯re too kind.¡± Chapter 1573 Chapter 1573 Chapter 1573 Remy was not bothered by Mrs. Stone¡¯s attitude. He was pursuing his future wife, so he had to be thick- skinned. He still asked with concern, ¡°Mrs. Stone, have you applied ointment to your sprained foot? I also bought a few types of ointments for you. They¡¯re meant for treating sprains and bruises.¡± After hearing what he said, Elisa opened the few big bags and found a small bag from the pharmacy in one of them. Inside were several bottles of ointments for sprains and bruises. ¡°Remy, we havemon ointments for families. My mom¡¯s foot has been treated with it,¡± Elisa noted. Even so, she was moved by the fact that Remy brought ointments for her mom. Remy valued her family, which meant that he valued her. It turned out that being valued by the opposite sex could give such a warm feeling. When Elisa used to pursue Zachary, he did not even want to see her, let alone value her. Remy said, ¡°As long as some ointment has been used. If it doesn¡¯t help, remember to go to the hospital and do a scan to see if her bones are injured.¡± Mrs. Stone remained indifferent and responded, ¡°There¡¯s no need to do a scan. I only sprained it, so I just need to rest for a while and apply more ointment tomorrow. Thanks for your concern, Mr. Johnson.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Remy hummed. After Elisa sat, he sat next to her-and that irritated Mrs. Stone. ¡°Mr. Johnson, your house is still being renovated, so a lot is going on, right? I¡¯m fine, so you can do what you need. Thanks for visiting me and bringing me so many supplements. We have plenty at home, but I appreciate your kindness. ¡°Clive, see Mr. Johnson out.¡± Mrs. Stone did not want to see her daughter sitting together with Remy, so she simply asked him to leave. Remy kept a gentle smile. Mrs. Stone could not help but admire his strong mentality. Although he was a favored child, he still maintaine his good manners and smiled when she treated him coldly and gave him a long face. ¡°Mrs. Stone, your supplements belong to your family, whereas these are small gifts from me. I hope you don¡¯t mind them. ¡°My house is still under renovation, so I¡¯lle and take a look every day. That said, I can¡¯t help with anything and can only ask the renovator to follow my instructions. It¡¯s fine for me to step away sometimes. After all, I¡¯ve given the drawings to the renovator.¡± Mrs. Stone¡¯s face tensed up. ¡°Mom, Remy came to see you out of kindness. He hasn¡¯t even had a ss of water yet.¡± Elisa had not epted Remy¡¯s feelings, but she had always treated him as a friend. The two of them got along very well. She could not help but defend him when her mom showed him a bad attitude. Mrs. Stone opened her mouth and finally ordered the maid, ¡°Bring Mr. Johnson a ss of warm water She could not go overboard in front of her daughter and could only re at Remy. Despite that, Remy was thick-faced. No matter how Mrs. Stone red at him, he was calm and did not change his expression. Since Elisa had spoken, even if Clive wanted to send Remy out, he could only sit still for the time being. Clive was hoping that Remy would feel that his ego was bruised and would leave on his own. His hope was doomed to fail. Remy did not feel that his ego was hurt. Chapter 1574 Chapter 1574 Chapter 1574 Remy recalled when his big brother and sister-inw received their marriage license. When his sister- in-w knew his brother¡¯s true identity, her mom also tried everything to persuade them to divorce. Even so, Remy¡¯s brother did not feel that his ego was damaged and used his actions to prove his sincerity. Remy¡¯s brother and sister-inw were able to be in love now after his brother got rid of his mother-in- It was not Remy¡¯s first day receiving cold looks from Mrs. Stone. She had not been the nicest to him since she realized that he had other intentions. Mrs. Stone would normally be careful about not letting Elisa know, but she no longer cared. Remy believed that Mrs. Stone must be determined to stop him and Elisa from getting together. It would be a long and arduous journey for Remy to pursue his future wife. Remy elegantly drank the ss of warm water. He did not forget to care for Mrs. Stone. It took him half an hour to finish the ss of water. He said after putting the ss down, ¡°Mrs. Stone, excuse me. I¡¯ll head back and supervise the renovator¡¯s work now.¡± Elisa was worried that Remy would feel upset about her mom suddenly treating him with indifference. She got up and said, ¡°Mom, I¡¯ll see Remy out.¡± Mrs. Stone wanted to say something but kept mum in the end. She watched with a tense face as her daughter sent Remy out. As for the supplements and ointments brought by Remy, once he left the main house, Mrs. Stone instructed her son and daughter-inw, ¡°Clive, Ally, throw away all the things Remy brought. They annoy me.¡± Alice said, ¡°Mom, Mr. Johnson did it out of kindness. He and Elisa are friends, and he¡¯s also our new neighbor. It was nice of him as a neighbor to send you some ointments when he found out that you sprained your foot. It won¡¯t be a good idea to throw them away, will it?¡± Clive said, ¡°I see that Elisa and Remy get along very well and that she also defends him. Mom, if you ask us to throw everything away, Elisa won¡¯t be happy when she finds out.¡± Mrs. Stone said with a dark face, ¡°Remy is clearly trying to snatch your sister away, and yet you¡¯re giving him face.¡± ¡°Mom, I¡¯m also reluctant for Elisa to be married far away, but let her deal with her rtionships on her own. I believe she can handle it. Elisa has been hurt before, and it was hard for her to click with Remy, so let¡¯s give him a chance.¡± Clive could not bear to see her sister married off to a distance, but he also thought that Remy was a good match for her. ¡°If you can¡¯t bear to see it happen, we must break their love before they fall deeper into it. Elisa¡¯s love for Zachary hurt her very much. How many times has she cried in front of you?¡± ¡°Mom, this is different. Zachary never liked Elisa, much less promised her anything. On the other hand, Remy likes Elisa and confessed to her. I think that she has feelings for him as well.¡± Mrs. Stone said persistently, ¡°I don¡¯t care. In any case, I won¡¯t let Elisa get married to Annenburg. Break them off while they¡¯ve just started to develop feelings for each other.¡± Remy had confessed to Elisa, but Elisa had not epted his feelings. Mrs. Stone thought that it was not toote to break them off at this time. Moreover, she must not waste her effort in arranging for Andrew and Elisa to meet. Of course, only she and her husband knew about the n. Mrs. Stone had filtered the young, talented, and handsome men in Wiltspoon. She thought the Readings and the Stones were well-matched. Although Andrew was Zachary¡¯s cousin, Andrew kept a low profile. If he did not reveal it, nobody would know that he was Zachary¡¯s cousin. Nothing happened between Elisa and Zachary anyway, and it was all in the past. Mrs. Stone thought that Andrew would not mind. After all, everyone had their past. ¡°Clive, I asked you to talk to Remy. Have you spoken to him yet?¡± Mrs. Stone looked at her son. Clive answered, ¡°Mom¡­ I¡¯m very busy. I haven¡¯t found the time to talk to him, but I¡¯ll go and talk to him in personter.¡±Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Chapter 1575 Chapter 1575 Chapter 1575 Mrs. Stone said to Clive, ¡°If you¡¯re going to talk to Remy, talk to him before it¡¯s toote. Don¡¯t let the two of them fall deeply in love. In particr, your sister still feels ufortable when she thinks about Zachary now. Don¡¯t think that I don¡¯t know.¡± It was just that Zachary became her niece¡¯s husband, so she could not say more. Therefore, Zachary would note to visit the Stones unless he had to. He would onlye for Serenity. Clive said, ¡°Mom, Elisa has let go of Zachary. She¡¯s calm when she faces him now.¡± Following that, he added, ¡°Mom, was it an ident that you sprained your foot? What¡¯s going on with Andrew? Were you trying to create an opportunity for him and Elisa? Andrew is Zachary¡¯s cousin. Even if the Readings keep a low profile, they¡¯re rted to the Yorks by marriage. That¡¯s a hard fact.¡± Mrs. Stone choked and looked at the door to make sure her daughter would note in. She responded, ¡°There aren¡¯t many families in Wiltspoon that are well-matched with us. Andrew is Zachary¡¯s cousin, but they¡¯re of the same age. He¡¯s only a few months younger than Zachary, but he¡¯s mature, calm, and gentle. ¡°Andrew and Remy are the same type of person. Since Elisa can get along well with Remy, she can definitely get along with Andrew. She and Zachary didn¡¯t really have a past since he never liked her nor promised her anything. ¡°Andrew must be aware of all this. As long as he likes Elisa, I think it¡¯ll be good for them to get together. As long as it¡¯ll stop her and Remy from getting together.¡± Mrs. Stone looked at the door again and lowered her voice much more as she continued, ¡°I¡¯m going to do another screening to see which other families have young and handsome guys who are suitable for Elisa. I¡¯ll arrange for a few more people to pursue her even if it¡¯s an act. ¡°It¡¯ll be best if we can stop Remy and Elisa from getting together. Even if she epts him in the end and wants to be with him, he¡¯ll be pressured and nervous if he has a few love rivals. In that case, Remy will treasure Elisa more in the future.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Clive was speechless. He had thought that his mom was overpraising Andrew just now. Sure enough, it was something she set up to prevent Elisa from getting married far away. Andrew and Elisa were dragged into the n. ¡°Keep this to yourselves and don¡¯t let Elisa know.¡± Mrs. Stone reminded her son and daughter-inw. ¡°Elisa is my only daughter, and I love her the most. I can¡¯t bear to see her getting married somewhere far away.¡± Mrs. Stone sighed again after she finished. Remy was an excellent man whom she admired. Unfortunately, he was from Annenburg. If Elisa married him, she would be going far away. Mrs. Stone was reluctant for that to happen! She could only be a bad person for once. Elisa did not know her mom¡¯s sprained foot was a plot she made to create an opportunity for Andrew and her to meet. After sending Remy out of the vi, Elisa did not go back inside right away. She apanied him to the big vi that was still under renovation. ¡°Remy, don¡¯t take what my mom said to heart.¡± It was Elisa¡¯s first time seeing her mom being unfriendly toward Remy. Her mom even asked him to leave. Elisa recalled her mom treating Remy nicely in the past. Remy smiled gently and said, ¡°I forgot what she said earlier. Her sprained foot must be painful, so it¡¯s normal for her to be in a bad mood. Elisa stopped and looked at him. Remy looked at her as well. ¡°Remy, my mom might¡¯ve found out about your feelings for me. She probably doesn¡¯t like us getting together.¡± Elisa was not dumb. Her mom was not always enthusiastic toward Remy, but she would never ask him to leave as she did today. Elisa¡¯s mom probably acted like that because she either found out or noticed that Remy confessed to Elisa. However, since Remy was from Annenburg, Elisa¡¯s mom was unwilling to let her get married far away. She started to be hostile toward Remy and wanted to stop him and Elisa from getting together. Elisa had not even made up her mind. Remy said after a moment of silence, ¡°I know your mom doesn¡¯t like that my home is too far away, but I¡¯ll work hard so that she¡¯ll ept me. Elisa, sweet words are useless. The only way to prove that my feelings for you are genuine is to let the facts speak for themselves.¡± Chapter 1576 Chapter 1576 Chapter 1576 ¡°You¡¯re the first and only person who moved me.¡± Remy was serious. He looked at Elisa with affection. He was growing fonder of her. ¡°Remy, I never questioned your feelings for me. I just think that it¡¯s too sudden and that I need some time to think about it.¡± Remy was understanding. He responded, ¡°I know.¡± He did not dare to force Elisa. ¡°I¡¯ll go back first. You should go on with your stuff.¡± Elisa was a little shy being looked at by Remy like that. Uh She could be shy too. Elisa had always been blunt and straightforward. She would easily offend people. She could not believe that she would be shy like a little girl. Remy did not make her stay. After walking her out of his vi and sending her back to the Stones¡¯ residence, he stopped and watched her go in. He only turned around and walked back when Elisa was out of sight. At the same time, he took out his phone to call Zachary. Yes, he called Zachary right away. Andrew was Zachary¡¯s cousin. Zachary knew best what kind of person Andrew was. Zachary answered the call very soon. ¡°Mr. York, I need to ask you for a favor.¡± ¡°Mr. Johnson, please go ahead. I¡¯ll definitely help you if I can.¡± Theirpanies were in deep coboration, so Zachary would give Remy face. ¡°Is Andrew your cousin?¡± ¡°Andrew? He¡¯s my cousin-my uncle¡¯s son. What¡¯s the matter? Do you hold a grudge against him?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Zachary asked with concern, ¡°Why do you have a grudge against each other? Andrew is a very tolerant person and has a good temper. He rarely holds a grudge against someone.¡± If someone had a grudge against Andrew, Zachary would think that it was the other party¡¯s problem. ¡°No, I only saw him once, and I don¡¯t hold a grudge against him. I¡¯m not afraid of beingughed at by you, Mr. York. My instinct tells me that he¡¯s going to be my love rival, so I want to ask you about his character.¡± Zachary was lost for words. He did not know how to respond to Remy. Zachary and the Johnsons had business dealings, and they were working closely together. He often had dealings with Remy, so they could be considered friends. Remy liked Elisa, and Elisa¡¯s cousin was Serenity. Zachary thought that he and Remy would be rtives sooner orter. Putting Andrew aside, Zachary was on Remy¡¯s side. However, now that Andrew was involved, Zachary felt he was sandwiched. The best would be to not help either of them so that he would not offend any of them. ¡°I know you¡¯ll be displeased if I ask someone to look into Mr. Reading, so I decided to ask you instead.¡± That way, Remy would not offend Zachary. Chapter 1577 Chapter 1577 Chapter 1577 Exclusive content ? by N?(v)el/Dr/ama.Org. Zachary found his voice after a cat got his tongue. He said with a smile, ¡°Mr. Johnson, you got me confused here.¡± ¡°How did Andrew be your rival in love? He broke up with his girlfriend of five years three years ago and has since been single.¡± Was Remy not in love with Elisa? While Andrew did know Elisa, he had no interaction with the girl whatsoever. Andrew did not have romantic feelings for Elisa, so he was no threat to Remy. ¡°Mr. Reading met Elisa today, so it¡¯s too early to say that he likes her. I¡¯m just a worry wart, but Mrs. Stone¡¯s attitude today gave me something to think about I¡¯m sorry you have to see me asking around about Mr. Reading.¡± Zachary was nosy for once. It was mainly because his wife drew close to listen in on the conversation He asked, ¡°Can you enlighten me on what¡¯s going on, Remy? ¡°What are you interested to know about Andrew?¡± Remy ryed the whole story to Zachary and said, ¡°The fact is Mr. Reading is your cousin, single, and without a girlfriend is enough for me to know.¡± He would not see Mr. Reading as apetitor if thetter was married or had a steady girlfriend. Elisa had her pride. She would not engage with Andrew, knowing that he had a girlfriend. Elisa never wanted toe between someone¡¯s rtionship. That was what she did with Zachary. Elisa got over her feelings when she found out that Zachary was married. In her words, Elisa had her pride and dignity. She was the heiress of the Stone family. Why should she stoop so low as to steal another person¡¯s man? ¡°Remy¡­ You¡¯re getting ahead of yourself.¡± Zachary smiled after getting the whole story. He believed that Remy got carried away. All because Andrew got to know Elisa and gave her a business card, Remy saw Andrew as the enemy. Was that not overreacting? Giving Zachary full rights tough at him, Remy replied, ¡°I know I am. I finally met a girl who makes my heart beat, and I want to spend the rest of my life with her. I don¡¯t want someone else to swoop in and take her. I must end thepetition before it even happens.¡± Zachary answered with a smile, ¡°I get it. I really do. Don¡¯t worry. Andrew will never be your competition.¡± He believed his cousin was not interested in Elisa that way. ¡°I¡¯ll still keep an eye on Mr. Andrew, but I can promise you that it¡¯ll be a fair fight if Mr. Reading does be a rival in the future. I won¡¯t pull any dirty tricks.¡± Zachary gleefully replied, ¡°Andrew is also an open and aboveboard man.¡± ¡°Sorry to bother you, Mr. York.¡± ¡°No worries about it. I get it.¡± Zachary ended the call with Remy in chuckles. Tilting his head, he looked into his wife¡¯s prying eyes and dotingly tapped her forehead. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like that. I¡¯ll always share any gossip with you.¡± ¡°Come on. Tell me what happened.¡± Curiosity was eating Serenity up alive, especially when she only heard one side of the conversation. ¡°Your aunt twisted her ankle today and ran into my cousin. I think you remember my cousin. Andrew turned up to River¡¯s birthday party, but his family is never keen on parties. He came to deliver the gift to River and said hello before leaving.¡± Chapter 1578 Chapter 1578 Chapter 1578 ¡°Andrew drove your aunt home, and Remy caught Elisa seeing Andrew out. Remy overreacted by seeing Andrew as a potential love rival. He called to get information on Andrew.¡± Serenity asked, ¡°Did my aunt hurt her ankle badly?¡± ¡°It¡¯s a sprain. She¡¯s wrapped up and doing okay. They have a family doctor. Remy mentioned that Mrs. Stone didn¡¯t summon the family doctor, so I guess it¡¯s not a bad sprain. Don¡¯t worry too much about it.¡± Serenity sent a text message to ask Elisa before giving Aunt Audrey a call. Serenity could only let go of the matter when she was sure it was merely a sprain. Aunt Audrey should be better in a few days. ¡°Remy seems to care a lot about Elisa. It exins the extreme lengths he goes to.¡± Showing understanding, Zachary said, ¡°In fact, he¡¯s not the only one to act that way. Anyone would be on high alert if their crush interacted with someone of the opposite sex, even if it was just a brief encounter.¡± Zachary kept his eye on Shawn back then. It turned out that Shawn did indeed have feelings for Serenity. Men were right to trust their guts too. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. ¡°I won¡¯t. I never worry or doubt that you would betray me,¡± Serenitymented with a smile. With Zachary meeting her eyes, Serenity gave his cheek a squeeze. ¡°You¡¯re good-looking, but you give the vibes to stay away. Youe off aloof to young women too. You might have a lot of admirers, but less than a handful have the guts to profess their feelings to you, much less go after you. ¡°That¡¯s why I have nothing to worry about. Hahaha. Zachary, it¡¯s good that you don¡¯t give people the time of day. At least, no one will steal you away from me. No one can take you away from me unless you fall for someone else.¡± Zachary caught her pinching hand and pulled it to his lips for a kiss. He murmured, ¡°I¡¯m worried that people will take you away from me. One Shawn was enough to make me lose my mind.¡± ¡°I think we can both rx. Who would want me after knowing that I¡¯m your wife? I guess I¡¯m stuck with you for life. Farewell to all the men in the world¡­¡± ¡°Oh, so you wanted all the men in the world?¡± asked Zachary eerily. ¡°That¡¯s before marrying you. It hasn¡¯t crossed my mind since. You¡¯re enough for me.¡± Serenity chuckled before making a run for it. Zachary immediately gave chase. He quickly caught her. As punishment, Zachary pressed his lips against hers for a deep kiss. Afraid they might be seen, Serenity put up a struggle, so Zachary could not have his way with her. In the end, he had to let go of her. He gently flicked her on the forehead and uttered, ¡°Don¡¯t even think about it. You can only be mine in this lifetime. I want to be with you in the next life if that exists.¡± ¡°What if I am a man in the next life?¡± Zachary answered, ¡°I guess it¡¯ll be us against the world.¡± Serenity had no words. What a possessive man. It was not enough for him to have her in this lifetime. He wanted her for himself in the next life too. It did not matter to Zachary she would be of a different gender. Picking up on Sonny¡¯s cheerfulughter, Serenity said to her husband, ¡°We better check on Sonny in the yground. The boy must have quite a st today.¡± ¡°Rowan isn¡¯t going to spend his day just resting now that he has a day off, so of course he would give Sonny a day to remember.¡± Grandma May suggested an ind vacation to the youngsters. However, Rowan only had a day off. He would be hitting the books tomorrow. Besides, since Jasmine was visiting her family tomorrow, the Soxes invited Serenity and the others for lunch. Zachary nned to take his wife to the ind tomorrow afternoon just in time for the sunset at the beach. They would watch the sunrise the following day too. Chapter 1579 Chapter 1579 Chapter 1579 On the other end, Remy continued watching the builders work after the phone call with Zachary. Remy also called the florist for a delivery of a bouquet of roses in the evening. Time passed quickly. The sun went over the horizon. The florist delivered therge bouquet of roses as Remy had ordered. After paying for the flowers, Remy carried the bouquet and took strides to the Stones¡¯ residence. Since the two houses were close by, it only took less than two minutes on foot for Remy to get to the front gate of the Stones¡¯ residence. Remy was about to ring the doorbell when Clive walked out of the house. Ditching the idea of pressing the doorbell, Remy waited for Clive toe over. Two minutester, Clive stood before Remy. Both were around the same height and imposing in presence. They engaged in a stare-down. ¡°These flowers are¡­ blinding.¡± Clive broke the silence. Sure, he admired Remy for the man he was, but Clive took a protective stance for Elisa now that Remy was openly pursuing her. Clive wanted nothing more than to dump the flowers in the trash can and tell Remy to get lost. He was not going to give her sister¡¯s hand in marriage to just about anyone. Keeping a good attitude, Remy lowered his gaze to the bouquet of roses and replied, ¡°The flowers are beautiful and dazzling. I mean, they are blinding too-gorgeously blinding. ¡°I don¡¯t think Elisa is out.¡± Remy had been keeping an eye out for the Stones¡¯ activity, so he knew Elisa had been home all afternoon to keep her motherpany. Even Clive and his wife stayed at home. Darrell and Anthony were the only ones who had been out and about. This was the great thing about being neighbors. Remy got an idea of whether anybody was home. ¡°Since you¡¯re here for a visit at this hour, are you trying to freeload dinner again?¡± Remy answered with a smile, ¡°Elisa is always keen for me to stay. I can¡¯t say no to her.¡± Clive wanted to give Remy a piece of his mind. The man was shameless. Remy outstayed his wee, and his sister merely invited him for dinner out of courtesy. ¡°Let¡¯s talk, Remy,¡± Clive uttered. Remy nodded with a grin. ¡°Anytime.¡± ¡°We should go to your ce.¡± Remy gave it a thought before agreeing to the suggestion. The pair went to Remy¡¯s residence. Remy invited Clive to sit under a gazebo and apologetically said, ¡°The house is going through remodeling. It¡¯s too much of a mess to host guests, so I hope you don¡¯t mind that we sit here.¡± ¡°Mr. Johnson, I don¡¯t think we¡¯re close enough to call each other on a first-name basis. It¡¯s Mr. Stone to you. ¡°We can take a less formal form of address when you seed in marrying my sister. That is¡­ if someone else doesn¡¯t win her heart first.¡± Remy kept to himself for a moment before popping the question. ¡°Is thising from Mrs. Stone or you?¡± ¡°It¡¯s from our entire family. Remy, we know the reason for your frequent visits. Honestly, I quite admire you, including my mom too, but we disapprove of you as a husband to Elisa.¡± Remy asked, ¡°Is it because I¡¯m from Annenburg?¡± ¡°I guess you¡¯re aware of that. My mom was a career woman during her younger days. She¡¯s headstrong with what she wants, and Elisa is the apple of her eye. She doesn¡¯t wish for Elisa to marry off to a faraway ce. It¡¯s hard for you to change my mother¡¯s mind. ¡°Remy, you should quit while you¡¯re ahead. Stop showing up in front of Elisa. I don¡¯t think your rtionship with Elisa will go far.¡± Clive persuaded Remy to give up. Looking around his property, Remy asked Clive, ¡°What do you think of my ce, Mr. Stone?¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. ¡°It¡¯s nice.¡± ¡°Is it far from your house?¡± Chapter 1580 Chapter 1580 Chapter 1580 Clive fell silent for a bit before answering, ¡°It¡¯s not far, but ¡± ¡°Mr. Stone¡± Putting on a serious face, Remy earnestly said, ¡°I like Elisa. I¡¯m after a serious rtionship with the intention of marrying her. I won¡¯t give up on her. ¡°I understand your family¡¯s concern. That was why I bought this vi My main responsibility is FC & Co¡¯s business in Wiltspoon, so I¡¯m a permanent resident here I rarely return to Annenburg We¡¯ll be staying in Wiltspoon and living in this house if Elisa chooses to marry me¡± Remy believed he had done enough to provide the assurance. ¡°No one can say what will happen in the future. My mom will only consider you as Elisa¡¯s husband candidate if you marry into the family.¡± ¡°I can do that if that is Mrs. Stone¡¯s wish. My brother can fulfill his duty as a son to our parents Clive was speechless. His mother had never said such a thing. She would not budge on giving Remy the stamp of approval though. Thest thing his mother wanted was for Elisa to marry off to a faraway ce. ¡°Mr. Stone, I understand your concern. It¡¯s hard for you to trust whatever I say because people can change. I believe that time will tell. I¡¯ll prove to you if you¡¯re willing to give me the chance I¡¯ll show you that I¡¯m a man of my word. Is that okay?¡± Clive remained silent. In fact, he was at a loss for words. After a long silence, Clive said, ¡°I did my part and talked to you. At least, I¡¯ve done what my mom told me to. I should head back.¡± Remy got up and walked Clive to thetter¡¯s gates. He watched as Clive entered his house before pressing on the doorbell. A maid soon emerged. ¡°Mr. Johnson, Mr. Clive just came in. Didn¡¯t you see him?¡± the maid asked in confusion. Besides, the gate of the residence was not closed. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Remy let out a gentlemanly smile. ¡°Mr. Stone went on ahead of me. I couldn¡¯t keep up with him, so I rang the doorbell. Mrs. Lott, I wish to see Elisa.¡± Mrs. Lott got the gist when she saw the bouquet in Remy¡¯s arms. She said, ¡°Please hold on, Mr. Johnson. I¡¯ll inform Miss Elisa.¡± ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Lott.¡± Several minutester, Elisa came out with her handbag. She strutted to the driveway and got into her car before driving to the gate. She pulled up, rolled down the windows, and said to Remy, ¡°Get in, Remy I¡¯m buying you dinner.¡± Seeing that she was angry, Remy decided to get into the car without questions. Once Remy was in, Elisa started the engine. ¡°Elisa¡­¡± Alice, Elisa¡¯s sister-inw, came out of the house and called out her name. Instead of responding to her sister-inw or stopping the car, Elisa stepped on the elerator. Remy cautiously took a look at her, not knowing whether he should give her the flowers. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Elisa?¡± ¡°Nothing. I got into a spat with my mom. My mom got mad, and so did I. I didn¡¯t want to eat at home, so we should go out for dinner. What do you fancy?¡± ¡°I¡¯m fine with anything so long as I am with you. I don¡¯t mind food trucks.¡± Elisa took a nce at him and replied, ¡°I¡¯ve never tried food trucks.¡± ¡°I had it before. The food is good.¡± People of their social rank would think food trucks were demeaning in status and uneptable in hygiene quality. ¡°Elisa, your mom only wants the best for you. ¡± Remy could guess the reason for the mother and daughter¡¯s argument. ¡°I know my mom loves me. She talks about having my best interest in mind, but she needs to consider my feelings. Do I want her to make the decisions for me?¡± Many parents loved to interfere with their children¡¯s lives ¡°for their own good¡±. Nevertheless, did the children want their parents¡¯ involvement though? Was the choice the parents made really the best for their children? Chapter 1581 Chapter 1581 Chapter 1581 Remy fell silent for a moment before giving his two cents. ¡°Our parents want what¡¯s best for us, but we may not approve of their methods. We might take it the wrong way and think they¡¯re making our lives difficult.¡± ¡°That¡¯s right. Do your parents do the same too?¡± Elisa asked. ¡°My parents stay out of my business once I reach adulthood. Then again, they don¡¯t really get involved because my eldest brother is the boss of me. The seniors in my family don¡¯t interfere with the younger generation¡¯s business. Though, they might say something if we haven¡¯t settled down.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Elisa smiled. ¡°That¡¯s right. I heard the elders of the Johnsons are pretty liberal like the Yorks. No wonder you guys are the 1% of the poption. Everything seems to be going well for your lives.¡± ¡°Elisa, is your mom forbidding you to date me?¡± Elisa gave an honest answer. ¡°That¡¯s right. My mom said you¡¯re from out of town. She doesn¡¯t want me to marry off to a faraway ce. She is forceful and determined to separate us. She said that there are many bachelors in Wiltspoon. ording to her, it¡¯s better to marry a regr guy than to marry somewhere else.¡± Her mother was so eager to stop any rtionship from forming even though Elisa and Remy had not reached the stage of marriage. Remy kept to himself for a bit before uttering. ¡°Apart from the distance, are there any other issues she¡¯s not happy about?¡± ¡°No, that¡¯s it. She¡¯s not pleased that you aren¡¯t a local. This issue alone is a tough one. Why would you want more issues?¡± Remy let out a smile and replied, ¡°It¡¯s not a hard problem. Give Mrs. Stone some time. She¡¯lle around to ept me.¡± He looked into Elisa¡¯s eyes. ¡°I¡¯m more anxious to find out when you will ept me.¡± ¡°Oh, me.¡± In a much better mood, Elisa kept her eye on the road and responded, ¡°I never had a guye after me. I want to enjoy being wooed and the feeling of being loved.¡± Remy heard her and kept it in mind. He would satisfy whatever her heart¡¯s desire to make her happy so she would open the door to her heart. Remy knew that Elisa was not without feelings for him. In her words, Elisa wanted to be one who got all the love and attention for once. She was the one doing the chasing in the past. Elisa took Remy to Wiltspoon Hotel. After parking the car, she turned to Remy and uttered, ¡°Are these flowers for me?¡± Remy handed her the bouquet. With his burning eyes fixated on her, he said, ¡°I wanted to give you the flowers, but your brother wouldn¡¯t let me in. I rang the doorbell, and you came out. I thought I should hold onto the bouquet since you were driving.¡± Elisa happily epted the flowers. ¡°Everybody except my dad disapproves of us taking our rtionship to the next level. My mom is the one most against it. You know my mom used to manage my dad¡¯spany. She considers herself a businesswoman and has a tough personality to match, but she has always been gentle and tolerant toward me. ¡°When I was younger, my brothers would beg me to put in the good word whenever they did something. wrong. My mom would ept my pleas for my brothers no matter how angry she was.¡± Elisa sighed. ¡°My family didn¡¯t support me when I fell in love with Zachary. Now that I have no feelings for him and am considering you as a potential partner, they¡¯re not showing me any support either. No wonder I have a nk dating history even though I¡¯m in my twenties.¡± Her family inserted themselves a lot in her life. Elisa carried the flowers and got out of the car before Remy could say anything. ¡°Come on. Let¡¯s have dinner. All this talk is depressing.¡± ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll take you to the movies after dinner.¡± To Elisa, there was nothing interesting about the cinema. Heck, she rarely watched movies. Still, she held. her tongue. It dawned on her that many couples would go to the movies while dating. It was not like the movies were good, but it was the romantic atmosphere and time spent together the couples were after. The night rolled around. The streetlights around Wildridge Manor were lit up. The entire estate from a bird¡¯s view was quite the scenery. Chapter 1582 Chapter 1582 Chapter 1582 After dinner, Serenity returned to her room to take a shower before heading to the guest bedroom where her sister was. Liberty was carrying her son out of the bathroom. ¡°Sonny is just done with his shower. ¡°He had a st today, and now he¡¯s sleepy. I quickly gave him a wash, and he was nodding off in the showers.¡± Libertyy her son down on the bed as the little man was asleep. Serenity pinched Sonny¡¯s cheek with a smile. Sleeping like a log, Sonny had no reaction to his aunt getting a good squeeze of his face. ¡°He and Rowan were really running around the ce today. It¡¯s a good thing. The pressure to do well in his studies is real even though he¡¯s only in tenth grade. His cousins and brothers performed well academically, so he will begging behind if he doesn¡¯t put in the work. His cousins and brothers won¡¯t be pleased about that. ¡°All that fun is a good stress reliever.¡± Serenity¡¯s heart went out to the youngest member of the York family. The kid was a sweet talker. He would always say hello to Serenity with the cutest voice. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Liberty thought something was bothering her sister. ¡°Nothing. I¡¯m just here to check on Sonny. Since he¡¯s asleep, I¡¯ll go to the study. You should get some early rest too, Liberty.¡± Liberty replied with a smile, ¡°It¡¯s too early for my bedtime. I go to bed around ten.¡± It was only seven o¡¯clock at night right now. ¡°Carry on with your work. Don¡¯t put too much pressure on yourself. Don¡¯t think of yourself as any lesser than your mother¨Cinw and the others. They are familiar and experienced with the system, but you¡¯re just starting. Don¡¯tpare yourself with other people. All experiences start from zero. You can do it.¡± Serenity answered, ¡°The stress was unbelievable in the beginning, but I felt much better after my mother¨Cin w said I have a few years to learn the ropes. I will do my best, Liberty. I¡¯ll look down on myself if I can¡¯t do my job well as thedy of the house.¡± Liberty tucked her son in. ¡°Yeah. Take your time. Don¡¯t let me keep you.¡± Serenity drew close to smooch her nephew¡¯s face before leaving her sister¡¯s room. She went to the study. Looking at the shelves of ount books in the study, Serenity was at a loss about where to start. She took a rough look around, scanning the ledgers on the shelves until she could clear her head. She should get an idea of the situation in Wildridge Manor before moving on to the family¡¯s business ounts Serenity read the ount books in the study while Zachary had a chat with his nana downstairs. Duncan had not left. He had been sticking around the Yorks residence for the whole day now ¡°Grandma May.¡± Duncan whispered a question, ¡°Did you put in the good word for me?¡± He was aware that Grandma May had a heart¨Cto¨Cheart with Liberty Looking askance at Duncan, Grandma May replied, ¡°I only have one grandson who is married. I still have. the others to think about. Where am I going to find the time to worry about you too?¡± Before Duncan could chime in, the olddy added, ¡°Liberty has been through a rtionship that hurt her too much. She¡¯s reluctant to even consider marriage. It¡¯s not going to be easy for her to let go of the past and start over. Baby steps.¡± Duncan let out a sigh. He had mentally prepared himself to wait a few years until Liberty earned sess to find a spot next to him. Perhaps she would ept him in her life then. Still, Duncan was eager and desperate. He wished he could get the girl right after making his feelings known to Liberty. Chapter 1583 Chapter 1583 Chapter 1583 ¡°I understand, Grandma May.¡± Duncan was down in the dumps. Still, the frustration onlysted for two minutes, and he regained his fighting spirit. Duncan had not begun the pursuit yet, and for him to lose the will now, he might as well move on. ¡°It¡¯ste. You should go home.¡± Grandma May showed Duncan the door. Duncan said with a kill, ¡°Are you kicking me out, Grandma May? I was going to have a drink or two with Zachary,¡± ¡°I¡¯m not drinking tonight.¡± Zachary was quick to say no. Duncan chucked. ¡°I heard that you don¡¯t really drink at business parties anymore. Apparently, you quit alcohol because your wife doesn¡¯t like you drinking. You don¡¯t smoke, drink, gamble, or solicit Our Mr. York has be a model husband.¡± The grandmother and grandson blurted in unison, ¡°Watch and learn.¡± Duncan was speechless, to say the least. In the end, Duncan left Wildridge Manor. Once he was gone, Zachary stayed to chat with his nana for a while. Since the grandmother and grandson were close, they had a lot to talk about. It took Grandma May to yawn a few times before Zachary said, ¡± You¡¯re tired. It¡¯s time for you to get some rest.¡± Grandma May let out another yawn. ¡°I am getting old. I can barely keep my eyes open when my bedtime. approaches. Still, I¡¯ll get to sleep and wake up before the break of dawn.¡± Rising to her feet, Grandma May retreated to her bedroom. Zachary waited until his nana was in bed before heading upstairs. Thinking that his wife was in bed waiting for him, Zachary opened the bedroom door to a dark room. He turned on the light and swept his gaze around the room. The lithe figure was nowhere to be found. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Thinking that Serenity was in her sister¡¯s room, Zachary was not in a hurry to look for his wife. He took a shower and sat in bed to read a magazine. By eleven o¡¯clock at night, his partner in bed still had not returned. Since he disliked and was not used to sleeping alone, Zachary went in search of his wife. Zachary arrived outside his sister¨Cinw¡¯s bedroom door, thinking that Serenity was inside. He quietly listened for any activity happening inside, but there did not seem to be anybody talking in the room. In the end, he knocked on the door. Liberty was already asleep. Picking up on the knocking in a daze, she sat up and asked, ¡°Who is it?¡± ¡°It¡¯s me, Liberty. Is Seren in your room?¡± ¡°Seren is in the study.¡± Zachary answered, ¡°Oh. Sorry to bother you, Liberty.¡± It never urred to him that Serenity would be studying the ledgers in the study. Soon, Zachary reached the study and lifted his arm to knock on the door. ¡°Seren.¡± With his voice taking her attention away from the books, Serenity was surprised to find that it was midnight. Closing the book in her hand, she returned it back to its ce, got up, walked around the desk, and went to open the door. ¡°What time is it? Why aren¡¯t you in bed yet? You left your husband all alone,¡± Zachary whined. Serenity replied with a smile, ¡°I didn¡¯t notice the time. I didn¡¯t think I¡¯d take a long time.¡± She turned off the study light, shut the door, and locked it. Serenity then intimately held Zachary¡¯s arm. ¡°Don¡¯t be mad, babe.¡± Zachary scoffed on purpose. ¡°Well, ites down to you on what you want to do about it.¡± Serenity giggled. Back in the bedroom, Serenity pinned him down against the door and gleefully teased him. ¡°I¡¯ll show you what I want to do about it.¡± She then hooked her arms around the nape of his neck. Zachary got down to her eye level so that she could seal his lips. A certain somebody was not too pleased with a mere kiss. Chapter 1584 Chapter 1584 Chapter 1584 It took less than two minutes for Zachary to take a more active role rather than being passive. He carried his wife to the bed and demanded more. No words were needed for the rest of the night. The following day was when Jasmine would drop by her family home for a visit as Mrs. Bucham. Serenity and her sister were having lunch at the Soxes¡® residence. Zachary would, of course, be with his wife. After the visit, Jasmine and Josh would travel for their honeymoon the next day. It would also mark the end of the brief public holidays. Then came the time to get back to work, back to school, and back to business as usual. For the mass public, they were to resume the normal routine. Apart from watching the shop, Serenity would find the time to return to her hometown with Elisa to check. on agriculture progress. The seasonal vegetables had been nted as nned. Looking at the greens all around, Elisa told Serenity, ¡°The administrator said that the vegetables will be ready to be sold in another week.¡± Serenity observed the ntation and uttered, ¡°Can we sell everything to the hotels and school cafeterias. we negotiated with?¡± ¡°No. We have a huge ntation with a variety of greens. The few hotels and school cafeterias won¡¯t be able to take all the crops. I need to go around and seal a deal with more hotels and school cafeterias.¡± ¡°We can work together with a few fixed sellers in the market,¡± Serenity suggested. ¡°Since we¡¯re only starting off, we can coborate with anyone who wants our vegetables. We wee all scales of businesses.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. They wanted to market these vegetables on their own instead of getting their families involved. Serenity could expect to manage a lot of othermercial activities in the future as she was the wife of the Yorks¡® heir. Her involvement should not be limited to paperwork like ount books. She should get at little of the know¨Chow of every trade. She could begin by bringing sales to the business for the sake of experience. Elisa was in agreement with Serenity¡¯s suggestion. The pair did a round of inspection of the ntation before taking their lunch at a local restaurant. They then made haste back to the city. The vegetables on the ntation would be avable in the market in a week. With the clock ticking, Elisa and Serenity had to get back to the city and seek more partners. Serenity would be working the markets. Since Elisa was born with a silver spoon, it did not suit her to trail the markets for partners. Serenity might be Mrs. York now, but she grew up alongside all walks of life. She had a better idea of the vegetable prices in the market. Elisa and Serenity were busy day in and day out. Sometimes, Serenity needed to socialize with Zachary at dinner parties and other events. Zachary had never been keen on social events in the past unless it was hosted by the Marshalls. Yet now, Zachary could always be seen at any gatherings he was invited to, and his motive was to show his wife around. He could also introduce his wife to the CEOS to aplish two things¨Cbuild a network for his wife and show off his rtionship. Everybody in Wiltspoonmercial scene knew the extent of Mr. York¡¯s love for his wife. Even so, Zachary got the feeling that he was no longer on Serenity¡¯s priority listtely. That night, Zachary returned home to find that Serenity¡¯s car was not in the garage. He knew she was not home yet. It was eleven o¡¯clock at night. Zachary got out of the car, looking rather upset. Spotting his boss¡¯s tensed face, Sam cautiously asked, ¡°Did you have a bad day, sir?¡± ¡°Is Mrs. York home yet?¡± ¡°No.¡± It hit Sam the reason that Mr. Zachary was not too happy. The missus had been hometer than Mr. Zacharytely. Mr. Zachary must think the missus was too busy with work to pay him any attention. ¡°It¡¯ste. Why isn¡¯t she home yet?¡± Zachary mumbled under his breath while walking into the house and pulling out his phone to call Serenity. It did not take long for Serenity to pick up his call. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, babe?¡± ¡°I miss you.¡± Although Zachary was not pleased that his wife neglected him, he could not show it in his attitude, especially when he heard her voice. Chapter 1585 Chapter 1585 Chapter 1585 Sam snickered. Zachary hadpletely be a ve to his wife. Serenityughed on the other side of the line. ¡°I¡¯ll be home soon. Are you home?¡± ¡°Yeah, I just got home. Where are you now? Let me pick you up.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay, don¡¯t trouble yourself. I can drive myself home. Besides, it¡¯s too much of a hassle for you to come all the way from home just to bring me home. I¡¯ll be back in ten minutes. Just wait for me at home, babe.¡± ¡°Sure. Drive safe. Remember that you¡¯re driving a car, not flying a jet.¡± Serenity chuckled. ¡°I don¡¯t even know how to fly a ne.¡± Serenity would sometimes speed on the way home and would soon be dissuaded by her two bodyguards. When Zachary knew of it, he gave her an earshing. He then told Liberty about it too, in hopes that she would reprimand Serenity for her actions. Serenity found out Zachary lovesining to her sister. Zachary would turn to Liberty whenever his advice for Serenity fell on deaf ears. Since then, Serenity needed to be mindful of Zachary¡¯s mood in every action she took. He would whine to his inws every single day if Serenity was not careful. She had never seen such a man¨Cchild. When Serenityined to her sister about Zachary¡¯s incessant snitching, Liberty exined to her that Zachary was actually worried about her. However, he did not want to get into a conflict with her over a trivial matter. Instead of telling her off himself, he turned to Liberty to do it on his behalf. He did not snitch out of bitterness, but genuine concern. What else could Serenity say as a retort? Liberty waspletely on Zachary¡¯s side on this matter. ¡°Would you like to have anything for supper? I¡¯ll cook for you.¡± Serenity said, ¡°The food doesn¡¯t taste the same when I¡¯m eating alone. Besides, I don¡¯t eatte at night. because I don¡¯t want to gain weight.¡± Zachary took good care of his physique. He never ate supper. Even when attending social events, he barely ate. He would also limit his alcohol intake with asional few sips. There were times he did not touch a single drop of alcohol. Everyone in Wiltspoon knew that you should never suggest drinking when doing business with Mr. York. As he once suffered from gastritis, Mrs. York was opposed to the idea of him consuming alcohol, saying that alcohol will harm his stomach and his overall health. ¡°You¡¯re not fat at all. On the contrary, you¡¯re as light as a feather. In fact, you should eat more, and gain some weight. When you finally be too heavy to move, I won¡¯t have to worry about you leaving my sight.¡± Serenity chuckled. ¡°We¡¯re a married couple now, you don¡¯t have to worry about me leaving your side. Even if I were to leave you, where could I even go? I know for sure that you¡¯ll go to the ends of the earth to search for me regardless. Why would I waste all that time and effort? I¡¯d rather spend my time doing some business and earning some money.¡± ¡°You¡¯re always thinking about making money, I bet you¡¯re too enamored with money to even notice my existence.¡± ¡°Come on, don¡¯t be so grumpy. I¡¯ll head home right away.¡± ¡°It¡¯s your fault that I¡¯m acting this way.¡± ¡°It can¡¯t be helped. Being your wife is stressful, you know, with all the burden on my shoulders and whatnot.¡± Zachary dared not utter a word. He also hoped that Serenity could continue leading an easy life as a typical bookstore owner. However, Serenity was now his wife and soon thedy of the house. Naturally, she had to carry the burden of managing the household. Hopefully, they could wee a child soon. Once the child turned into an adult, Zachary could enjoy an early retirement and travel with his wife¨Cjust like how his father did decades ago. Zachary¡¯s mood improved significantly after the conversation. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. As he entered the house, he did not enter his room as he would usually do. Instead, he sat down on the couch and turned on the TV to create an ambient noise within the walls of his house. Although Serenity said that she would be back in ten minutes, it took her twenty. She bought some snacks on the way home. Serenity missed the vors of local Wiltspoon delicacies, as she had been indulging in exotic cuisine in the many social events she attended with her husband. She decided to buy some snacks, as she passed by the night market en¨Croute home. Chapter 1586 Chapter 1586 Chapter 1586 ¡°Babe, I¡¯m home!¡± Serenity yelled as she entered the room with some snacks. Zachary walked over to meet her. He saw that she was carrying a bag containing several disposable boxes. ¡°I thought you said that you don¡¯t eat at this hour. Why did you still pack supper home? Are you disgusted by my poor cooking skills? Is that why you rejected the idea of me making supper for you?¡± Zachary was petty and would magnify a small matter to the point where he thought Serenity loathed him. ¡°No way! Babe, your cooking skills have surpassed mine. When I was passing by the night market, I just felt nostalgic and couldn¡¯t help but stop by and buy some of the few snacks I used to eat.¡± Zachary did not know how to make these local delicacies. He only ate what themon folk ate for breakfast because he was pretending to be poor. Serenity was in the dark back then, so she always. packed a local breakfast for him, and he ate it because he did not want his secret to get exposed. He still remembered the time Serenity made him a greasy bacon sandwich. He only ate the bread and left out the bacon. ¡°Do you want to eat together?¡± Serenity walked to the sofa and sat down. She took out several disposable boxes and ced them on the coffee table. Zachary saw that the opened boxes contained spicy tacos, fried cheese curds, and two BBQ chicken wings. Zachary turned around and fetched some disposable gloves for her. ¡°If you want to eat these, you can tell Sam. Our chef probably makes it better.¡± ¡°Well, I crave outside food sometimes. I want a bacon and egg wrap for breakfast at Liberty¡¯s diner tomorrow.¡± Serenity liked ordinary food. Zachary knew what she meant and stopped talking. He silently watched as Serenity ate with great relish as he was not brought up to eat such foods. Serenity did not buy much, so she finished them all by herself. However, she was still a little unsatisfied after she finished her food. ¡°If I didn¡¯t have a full schedule tomorrow, I would¡¯ve bought two bottles of beer.¡± Zachary¡¯s face was a little gloomy. He said, ¡°You have a full schedule every day! Do you still remember myst name? How long has it been since you told me that you love me? How long has it been since you bought me flowers or new clothes? ¡°I was at work all day and came home feeling exhausted. I thought that seeing your smiling face and listening to your soft voice when I get home will make it all worth it. But you weren¡¯t home when I got back! ¡°Ms. Serenity Hunt, you¡¯re seriously neglecting your husband!¡± Zachary made a serious protest. Serenity was speechless as she looked at him. Zachary seemed mad at her. He turned his face away and refused to look at her. ¡°Babe¡­¡± Serenity quickly started to coax her husband. This man had always been domineering. He was used to everyone revolving around him, but Serenity did not. He seemed to have changed his attitude, but in fact, he did not change one bit. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Serenity thought about it. She had indeed been busy recently, so she neglected him a little. She came hometer than he did a few times in a row. Since Zachary was ustomed to being the center of attention with everyone revolving around him, he got angry, threw a fit, and protested. ¡°How could I forget yourst name?¡± Serenity moved over, hugged Zachary¡¯s arm, and said softly, ¡°Yourst name is York, and your first name is Zachary. I really like your name, so I will never forget this name for the rest of my life. That¡¯s unless I get older and get Alzheimer¡¯s. If so, I may forget¡­¡± Zachary turned his face back and stared at her. Serenity quickly changed her words. ¡°Even if I get Alzheimer¡¯s, I¡¯ll never forget you!¡± Chapter 1587 Chapter 1587 Chapter 1587 ¡°Babe, I love you.¡± Serenity said the words that Zachary liked to hear the most. ¡°From now on, I¡¯ll buy you flowers every day, okay?¡± Buying flowers was easy. Serenity just had to tell Camryn to prepare a bouquet of flowers for her every day, then she would just give it to Zachary. ¡°I only have one vase in my office. Alternate days will be good enough.¡± Zachary¡¯s expression finally eased. Serenity said, ¡°Why don¡¯t I buy a few more vases for your office?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want people to see me as a vase.¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°You¡¯re a man. Who would regard you as a vase? Alright, so instead of buying you more vases, I¡¯ll just send you a bouquet of flowers every other day. It¡¯s Friday tomorrow. Shall we go shopping on Saturday? I¡¯ll buy you new clothes.¡± Zachary had plenty of new clothes in his closet. Every once in a while, a fashion designer would tailor new clothes for him. However, a certain someone still liked to receive clothes from his wife. Since Serenity learned of Zachary¡¯s true identity and had a cushy life, she bought him clothes from big brands, so as not to embarrass his title as the eldest son of the York family. Serenity bought Zachary¡¯s daily outfits. Zachary looked at her resentfully again. He was sulking. What he really wanted was not materialistic gifts. ¡°Babe, you know that the vegetable farm I invested in is now shipping out produce inrge quantities. We also need more partners. Elisa and I are just discussing business. Moreover, all of the Yorks¡¯ small businesses will be handed over to me soon, so I should study more and see more. ¡°That¡¯s why my schedule is packed. But I¡¯m always thinking about you. Besides my sister, you¡¯re ranked second in my heart. You¡¯ve surpassed Sonny!¡± Serenity was only busy for ten days, but Zachary could not stand it. To think when they first got their marriage license, Serenity did not have anyments when Zachary worked until midnight before he came home. Zachary thought, ¡®That¡¯s because when we just got our marriage license, we didn¡¯t have feelings for each. other, so who cares?¡¯ ¡°You can work on your business, but you can¡¯te backter than I do. From now on, you muste back by nine o¡¯clock every night. You should at least spare me a few hours, right? ¡°I¡¯ve be a resentful husband because my wife doesn¡¯t care about me anymore¡­¡± Zachary was busier than Serenity, but he still came home as early as possible every day just to apany her. ¡°Okay, okay. I¡¯lle home to apany you at nine o¡¯clock every night.¡± In order to coax this man, Serenity would agree to whatever he said. That was because her husband was such a domineering man. Even though Serenity made this promise, Zachary still punished her in bed twice that night. When Serenity showed up at her sister¡¯s breakfast diner the next morning, she was still yawning. Zachary told her to sleep in since she was sleepy. It would not affect his overtime anyway. Serenity was speechless. It seemed that married couples should not ignore each other. Liberty recovered well. Under Serenity¡¯s repeated requests, Liberty did not dare work so hard. Most of the time, Liberty asked her two workers to prepare breakfast for the customers while she did some light work. During the time she was hospitalized, the two workers did their jobs well. Although the business was not doing as well as usual, they still managed to keep their regr customers. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. After Liberty returned to All You Can Eat, she gave the two workers a raise. Liberty brought over a te of bacon and egg sandwich with hashbrowns and asked Serenity, ¡°Do you want peanut butter or ketchup?¡± ¡°Ketchup, please.¡± Serenity yawned again as she spoke. ¡°You didn¡¯t sleep wellst night? I saw you yawn several times since you walked in.¡± Liberty poured some ketchup for her sister, sat down beside her, and asked with concern, ¡°Are you busy recently?¡± The vegetable farm had a good harvest. The produce was distributed in batches. When one batch of vegetables was sold out, the second batch would be ready to be shipped out. ¡°Yeah, I¡¯ve been quite busy.¡± The vegetable business and the bookstore alone were not a lot to handle-at least Elisa could help share the burden. The main reason was that she still had to learn and master her inws¡¯ family businesses Even though her mother-inw and Zachary both said that there was no need to worry, Serenity dared not rx. Chapter 1588 Chapter 1588 Chapter 1588 ¡°You should get enough sleep. Health is more important than anything,¡± Liberty said in distress. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m fine.¡± Serenity did not sleep enoughst night because of her attention-seeking husband, and Serenity did not. want to share what happened in their bedroomst night. ¡°Has Jessica been released?¡± Serenity suddenly asked. Liberty was silent for a moment before she said, ¡°She¡¯s pregnant. ¡°She had just conceived before she was arrested. After she was in jail, she was in a bad mood and didn¡¯t find out until now. It¡¯s been three months now, and Hank is helping her to apply for bail.¡± However, Jessica would still have to be sentenced after giving birth. Serenity said, ¡°Her child came just in time.¡± Hank still had feelings for Jessica. He was pressured by his parents and sister to divorce Jessica, but he refused. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. He also wanted Liberty to issue a letter of understanding so that Jessica could have a lighter sentence Hank was cognizant that even if he divorced Jessica, Liberty would note back to him. His parents and sister were just too naive. They always thought that Liberty would do anything for her son and that Liberty would agree to remarry Hank as long as he proposed. ¡®Too naive,¡¯ he thought of his parents. Not to mention that Duncan was already pursuing Liberty openly, so even if Liberty did not have a suitor, she would not go back to Hank. Liberty made it clear that she would never remarry Hank. Hank regretted it and wanted Liberty back, but he had no chance. He could notpare to Duncan. Duncan also won over Sonny¡¯s heart. Now, Sonny and Duncan got along very well. There was no way Hank could get back together with Liberty. Moreover, Jessica was forced to hurt Sonny because of him. Thus, he felt sorry for Jessica. Knowing that Jessica was pregnant, Hank quickly helped her to apply for bail and took Jessica home. The apartment where Hank and Liberty used to live had been renovated. After Jessica was taken out, they stopped renting the other apartment and moved into their own home. However, Mrs. Brown refused to go back to her hometown and insisted on living with the couple. Since Mrs. Brown did not leave, Mr. Brown had to stay too. Even if Jessica was released from prison during her pregnancy, she would not have had it easy. ¡°She¡¯ll still have a hard time,¡± Liberty said calmly. ¡°That¡¯s karma. She deserves it!¡± Serenity did not sympathize with Jessica at all. Since Hank¡¯s family moved into the renovated house, there was no use for Old Mr. and Mrs. Hunt anymore. However, the Browns did not have a peaceful life. Hank had not visited Sonny for a long time. He also had no time and no mood to pester Liberty. Thus, Serenity asked Noah to take their grandparents back to their hometown. Of course, Serenitypensated them for their work since the three of them allowed Liberty to live a quiet life. Duncan entered the diner at this time. ¡°Liberty, Duncan stilles here for breakfast every day?¡± Serenity winked at her sister. Liberty lightly pinched Serenity¡¯s arm. ¡°Stop winking at me! You¡¯re now Zachary York¡¯s wife, so you should act like it.¡± Serenity muttered something, but Liberty could not hear her clearly. Chapter 1589 Chapter 1589 Chapter 1589 Duncan walked in but turned around and left before he said hello to the Hunt sisters. Serenity was puzzled and thought, ¡®What does this mean? Is he retreating? ¡®Or did he leave because he saw me here?¡± Just as Serenity was guessing what Duncan meant by leaving so quickly, Duncan came in again. This time, he had a bouquet of flowers in his hand. It turned out that he forgot to take the bouquet from his car. Serenity was stunned. She looked at her sister, but she saw that Liberty¡¯s face was stoic. Since it was still early, there were no other customers in the diner except Serenity. The two shop assistants were sitting beside them eating their breakfast. Seeing that there was a customer, the two of them wanted to get up and tend to the customer, but when they saw that it was Duncan, the two of them sat down again and continued to eat their breakfast. Duncan¡¯s pursuit of Liberty was so obvious that they could not even pretend not to know. ¡°Liberty.¡± Duncan came over holding the bouquet. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re early.¡± He greeted Serenity. Serenity said, ¡°I haven¡¯t eaten the signature breakfast in my sister¡¯s diner in a while, and I was craving it, so I came here early. Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re also very early.¡± It was only seven o¡¯clock in the morning. Serenity¡¯s husband was still asleep when she left the house. Before she left, she deliberately left a note on the bedside table for Zachary so that he would not wake up and lose his temper when he did not see her. He liked to me her for not waiting for him and for ignoring him. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. In the future, Serenity would have to spend more time caring about him. Otherwise, her back would break ¡°I usuallye at this time.¡± Duncan replied before he asked, ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny?¡± ¡°Sonny is at my house. Jim will send him to his lessonster.¡± Liberty was busy with her diner and had to get up early every day. It was not convenient for her to take Sonny with her, so the little guy stayed with Serenity at night. In the morning, Jim would send Sonny to ss. Duncan hummed, then handed the bouquet to Liberty. His ck eyes were fixated on Liberty as he said, ¡± Liberty, this is for you.¡± Liberty stood up. She faced Duncan¡¯s intense gaze frankly and declined his bouquet. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Lewis, but I don¡¯t like flowers. I¡¯ll cook you breakfast.¡± Duncan was mentally prepared for Liberty to refuse his bouquet. When he confessed his love to Liberty, Liberty also made it clear to him that she had no feelings for him. Thus, he was mentally prepared to be rejected by Liberty all the time. ¡°I¡¯ll have the same thing,¡± Duncan said. Liberty walked away. Duncan did not follow her around but sat opposite Serenity and put the bouquet on the table. Serenity kept looking at the two of them. After Duncan sat down, Serenity lowered her head to eat her breakfast. ¡°Zachary didn¡¯te with you?¡± Duncan looked for a topic to chat with Serenity about, so as not to make it so awkward. ¡°He¡¯s still asleep. I have to go to the bookstore, so I left the house early.¡± Chapter 1590 Chapter 1590 Chapter 1590 Duncan smiled and said, ¡°Oh.¡± Serenity looked at her sister¡¯s back, lowered her voice, and asked Duncan, ¡°The florists aren¡¯t even open at this hour. Did you bring this bouquet from home?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Yeah, I cut all the flowers that I could in the yard and made them into a bouquet myself.¡± ¡°No wonder,¡± Serenity nced at the bouquet of flowers. There were all kinds of flowers in the bouquet, not just roses. Duncan was a rough man. Although there were flowers and trees in his vi, he never once admired them. The butler had arranged for someone to buy them so as to add a bit of color to thendscape. Thus, not all of them were roses. Duncan cut all the flowers that bloomed in the vi to make this bouquet. The butler felt distressed when he found out that Duncan had cut off all the blooming flowers in the vi However, he supported Duncan in pursuing his crush. Thus, the butler decided to go to the flower field at Wildridge Manor to buy a full load of roses to put in the open space of the vi. This would make it more convenient for Duncan to cut flowers and give them to his crush. Duncan kept silent for a while before he asked Serenity in a low voice, ¡°Is it because my bouquet is too complicated? Is that why your sister hates it?¡± ¡°No. My sister just doesn¡¯t like receiving flowers from you, Mr. Lewis.¡± Duncan asked, ¡°When she was with Hank, did Hank give her flowers?¡± ¡°Yes. When Hank was chasing after my sister, he gave her a lot of gifts, mostly handwritten love letters. After all, they were still in school at that time. ¡°Then he invited my sister to watch a movie and eat snacks.¡± The two sisters depended on each other since childhood. Thus, Serenity had witnessed Hank¡¯s pursuit of Liberty. Serenity witnessed as Hank and Liberty went from being friends to lovers. They got married and divorced, and they were now back to being strangers. Duncan suddenly felt that he had done too little. He was not as good as that sc*mbag Hank. ¡°Serenity, thanks for giving me your suggestions.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I didn¡¯t give you any suggestions. ¡°I¡¯m on my sister¡¯s side. No matter what she decides, I will support her. Mr. Lewis, don¡¯t try to use me. Duncan smiled. ¡°You¡¯re Liberty¡¯s younger sister and the most important person to her, so I won¡¯t use you. I will only dote on you as my younger sister. If Zachary bullies you in the future, you can tell me, and I¡¯ll stand up for you.¡± Serenity wanted to say that Duncan was really not Zachary¡¯s opponent, but she swallowed those words. Liberty quickly cooked Duncan¡¯s breakfast and brought it over. The conversation between Duncan and Serenity stopped. Serenity soon had her fill. She got up and said to her sister, ¡°I¡¯ll head to the store first.¡± Liberty said, ¡°Alright, drive slowly.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity said to Duncan, ¡°I¡¯ll get going. You can take your time.¡± After she finished speaking, she took her bag and walked out of the breakfast diner. At this time, there were more customers having breakfast. Liberty went to greet the customers, and Duncan did not want to disturb her, so he ate his breakfast in silence. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. asionally, when no one was paying attention, Duncan would secretly take pictures of the busy Liberty with his phone. In his free time, he admired the photos he secretly took and fantasized about the day that Liberty would cook for him. 1 If Liberty married him, he would never let Liberty be so busy. Duncan wanted to cook for Liberty, but his cooking skills were not great and could not bepared with Zachary¡¯s. After all, the sons of the York family were all trained by Grandma May to bepetent chefs. Liberty did not even know when Duncan left the diner. He left the money for his breakfast on the table and put the bouquet of flowers at the cash register. Liberty did not notice that he was leaving, so she did not know that he had already ced the bouquet on the counter. After leaving the diner, Duncan turned his head to look at the busy Liberty for a moment before he reluctantly got into the car and went back to his office. Chapter 1591 Chapter 1591 Chapter 1591 Liberty was busy until after nine o¡¯clock in the morning. As the number of people eating breakfast reduced, she was able to rx. Lily chose to enter the diner when Liberty was free. Seeing here in, Liberty froze for a moment before she showed a polite smile. ¡°Ms. Harmon.¡± ¡°Ms. Hunt, you¡¯re not busy anymore, right?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not busy now, but I¡¯m ready to pack up and close the store. Ms. Harmon, what can I do for you?¡± Liberty and Lily did not interact much. Seeing Lily, Liberty thought that it must be because of Duncan. ¡°Nothing much. I went to Lewis & Co. to sign a contract with Duncan and happened to pass by, so I came in to have a look. How¡¯s your business going?¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°It¡¯s alright. I can still earn some after paying off the rent and workers¡® wages.¡± ¡°You make a really good breakfast. Duncan said that he likes toe over for breakfast. Take your time. You¡¯ll get better and start earning more in the future.¡± Making breakfast was hard work because one had to get up early. Liberty asked Lily to sit down. She poured Lily a ss of warm water. Liberty was dressed in ordinary clothes and an apron. She looked like a housewife. Meanwhile, Lily was wearing a women¡¯s suit that made her look smart and capable. Liberty could tell at a nce that Lily was a woman with a sessful career. This was in stark contrast with her. Liberty almost felt inferior to Lily. ¡°Thanks.¡± When Liberty put the cup of warm water in front of Lily, Lily thanked her with a smile. After Liberty sat down, Lilly looked at her. Liberty did not put on makeup, but her skin was great. After all, Liberty¡¯s younger sister married into a wealthy family. Liberty also had an aunt who was the matron of a wealthy family, so Liberty would not be short of good skin care products. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Moreover, Liberty was not too old and was one or two years older than Lily. Lily felt that Liberty had an honest look that made people feel at ease. Her smile was also soothing. Duncan said that he wanted to have a wife and a cozy home. He did not need a business partner. Perhaps, this was why Duncan liked Liberty. ¡°I¡¯m leaving Wiltspoon soon.¡± Lily spoke first Liberty asked her, ¡°Ms. Harmon, you¡¯re going back?¡± Chapter 154LI ¡°Yeah. In fact, I¡¯ve already left Wiltspoon. I only came back yesterday because I have to re¨Csign a contract with Duncan today. After signing the contract, I¡¯ll have to go back. I have too many things to deal with.¡± Liberty said, ¡°Oh.¡± Lily was the vice president of Harmon Corporation. She relied on her own capabilities to climb up the corporatedder to take this position. She was a strong and independent career woman. During her time in Wiltspoon, apart from apanying Mrs. Lewis and seemingly pursuing Duncan, Lily did not neglect her job. She negotiated a lot of business deals in Wiltspoon, and almost all of them were sessful. Herpany signed with many big businesses and cooperated with many powerful companies in Wiltspoon. ¡°Duncan is sincere about you,¡± Lily said suddenly. Liberty looked at her and did not speak. She knew that Duncan was sincere with her because a man like him would not fool around with women. Not to mention, Liberty was Zachary¡¯s sister¨Cinw. Duncan and Zachary were best friends, so Duncan would not dare fool around with Liberty either. ¡°Mrs. Lewis can¡¯t ept you not because you¡¯re not good enough. She¡¯s just¡­ But Duncan is very persistent. Liberty, you¡¯re a good woman. Although you¡¯ve had a failed marriage, not all men are sc* mbags. You ought to consider Duncan. ¡°I¡¯m a proud person, and I think that he¡¯s a good man. But unfortunately, he only has eyes for you.¡± Chapter 1592 Chapter 1592 Chapter 1592 Liberty listened to Lily¡¯s words and suspected that Duncan used the contract with Lily as leverage to make Lilye to her and put in a good word for him. Lily seemed to have read Liberty¡¯s thoughts and smiled. ¡°Duncan didn¡¯t ask me toe here to persuade you. I just found out that Duncan kept getting rejected by you, so I couldn¡¯t help but put in a good word for him.¡± ¡°Ms. Harmon, I only consider Mr. Lewis as a friend.¡± ¡°Is it because Mrs. Lewis doesn¡¯t ept you?¡± ¡°It has nothing to do with Mrs. Lewis. I truly only regard Mr. Lewis as a friend and have no other intentions.¡± Mrs. Lewis was one of the reasons, but she was not the main reason. Liberty did not ept Duncan because she did not love Duncan. She only regarded him as a friend and did not have any feelings for him. After Liberty divorced Hank, she vowed that she would not remarry in the short term. After Lily thought about it, she said, ¡°Right. If you don¡¯t have feelings for him, it¡¯s hard to ept their love. We shouldn¡¯t just settle for anyone.¡± This was especially true for Liberty because she had been emotionally hurt. ¡°Ms. Harmon, you and Mr. Lewis are a good match.¡± They had simr backgrounds, and Mrs. Lewis adored Lily. Liberty felt that Lily was the best match for Duncan. Lily smiled and said, ¡°Duncan and I seem to be a good match, but Duncan doesn¡¯t like me, and I have dignity. Since Duncan rejected me, I gave up on him. I don¡¯t want to be one of those pestering women.¡± Lily wanted to take her time to find a partner. Hopefully, she would be able to meet a man who only had eyes for her. Liberty did not know how to respond. She admired Lily and thought that she was just like Elisa. They would try their best to pursue their crush, and when they find out that their crush liked someone else, they would immediately let go. Elisa also said that she had dignity. There was no need topete with other women for a man. Elisa let go of Zachary and finally found the love that really belonged to her. Remy started to pursue Elisa passionately. Regardless of the Stones¡® attitude, Remy never gave up on Elisa. ¡°Are you fully recovered?¡± Lily changed the subject. Liberty thanked her and replied. ¡°I¡¯m recovering very well, but my arms will get sore after working for a Chapter 1592 2.2 while, and the wound will start to hurt a little. When that happens, I won¡¯t be able to exert much strength on my arm.¡± ¡°Ms. Hunt, you shouldn¡¯t overwork yourself. Health is more important than anything.¡± Liberty said, ¡°I won¡¯t overwork myself. I¡¯ll stop and rest when I feel any difort.¡± Fortunately, Liberty only did breakfast, so she only had to work in the morning and could rest for the remainder of the day. The twodies chatted for a while. Lily took out a business card, handed it to Liberty, and said, ¡°I have to rush to the airport, so I can¡¯t stay and chat. This is my business card. If you need help with anything in the future, you can contact me.¡± Liberty took Lily¡¯s business card with both hands and thanked her. She got up and sent Lily out. Lily¡¯s car was parked outside. It was not Lily¡¯s. Mrs. Lewis had lent it to her temporarily, and a driver was. waiting there. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. ¡°Ms. Hunt, you don¡¯t have to send me off.¡± Liberty stopped in front of the car and watched Lily get into the car. The driver started the car engine and drove Lily to the airport. Chapter 1593 Chapter 1593 Chapter 1593 Meanwhile at Wiltspoon School, Elisa parked the car, took the car keys, and walked into Serenity¡¯s bookstore. Serenity manned the store by herself and asionally weaved some handicrafts when she was bored. When Elisa came in, Serenity had just finished making a bicycle. ¡°Why are you making these things again? Didn¡¯t you outsource it to others? You shouldn¡¯t do so much work. If you fall sick from exhaustion, Zachary will get mad and ban you from doing anything. He¡¯ll make you stay at home every day as a rich housewife. When the timees, don¡¯teining to us.¡± Elisa put the car keys on the cash register and sat on the stool. She took the bicycle that Serenity just made and praised her. ¡°Seren, I have to say that you¡¯re ingenious! You can make a model of anything!¡± ¡°I learned it before. What do you like? I¡¯ll make one for you when I¡¯m free.¡± ¡°You¡¯d better not. I¡¯m afraid Zachary will stare at me with those cold eyes when he finds out. If I like something, I can just buy it in your store. It¡¯ll contribute to your revenue.¡± After that, she put down the craft bicycle. When Elisa came, Serenity stopped making the handicrafts and put away all the tools. Then, she poured a cup of warm water for Elisa, washed some fruit, and brought them out. ¡°Seren, I want to discuss something with you,¡± Elisa said while eating the fruit. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡± ¡°The vegetable farm we invested in is getting on the right track. I think we should set up apany. We should have our own offices and hire a few experienced farm supervisors to operate all the farms. ¡°We also need to hire a few professional managers to help us negotiate some business deals. We¡¯ll manage the big business by ourselves and leave the small business to the professional managers.¡± Serenity thought about it for a while and said, ¡°That¡¯s a good suggestion. We need to set up an office in my hometown. After all, our vegetable farms are all there. If it¡¯s too far, it¡¯ll be difficult for the staff to manage them.¡± ¡°Okay I¡¯ll leave it to you to hire the farm supervisors. I¡¯mpletely inexperienced in farming. I¡¯ve already asked a recruitment firm to hire a few professional managers.¡± Serenity had no objections. She said, ¡°The tearn leads we have now are doing a good job. Let¡¯s see their performance first. If they can hold a bigger responsibility, we can promote them to supervisors. ¡°Also, have you considered expanding further? My hometown manages a lot of small towns. We have only taken up the fields of a few towns to grow vegetables. If we want to expand our business, we can visit a few more towns and get morend¡± Since they wanted to set up an agriculturalpany, the vegetable farms they had now were not big enough Elise smiled and said, ¡°Great minds think alike!¡± The twodies made a small profit They had many partners, and the vegetables on the farm were nted in batches so that they could be shipped every day without worrying about sales. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Elisa had always lived a good life without worrying about having enough to eat, but she had never earned a penny. Now that she could make money by herself, she felt energized. ¡°Let¡¯s go back to my hometown next week and rent a space for our office there.¡± ¡°I saw a lot of empty plots ofnd in your hometown. Let¡¯s see if we can buy a plot ofnd and build a ce by ourselves. Although the capital is high, it¡¯ll be worth it in the long run. If we rent a space, the rental will keep increasing, and we¡¯ll spend the same amount overall.¡± Elisa had a lot of money, so she did not want to rent an office space. Chapter 1594 Chapter 1594 Chapter 1594 Serenity said, ¡°It takes time to buynd and build a house. Let¡¯s rent an office space first. Then we can buy a plot ofnd and build one when we find one to our liking.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Elisa then asked, ¡°We should inform Jasmine about this too. Do you want to send her a message, or should I?¡± Before Serenity could answer, Elisaughed and said, ¡°You should tell her. You and Jasmine have been friends for more than ten years. Even if you interrupt her honeymoon with Josh, Josh wouldn¡¯t dare do anything to you.¡± Serenity alsoughed. ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll call and talk to her tonight.¡± ¡°I see Jasmine¡¯s posts every day and feel so envious,¡± Elisa said. ¡°I¡¯m also envious. Zachary said that he¡¯ll also take me somewhere for our honeymoon after our wedding.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. ¡°I¡¯m so tired of feeling envious. I get stabbed every day being friends with you and Jasmine.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°You¡¯re not that far from happiness. Remy sends you flowers every day. He even sent you a love letter. My husband didn¡¯t even leave me a note, let alone a love letter.¡± At the mention of Remy, Elisa¡¯s smile deepened a little. However, she thought about something and became dispirited again. ¡°My family doesn¡¯t agree with me dating Remy. Seren, I don¡¯t want to hide in front of you. I do have feelings for Remy. We get along very well, and being with him makes me happier than ever. ¡°But whenever my mother sees Remy, she looks so displeased. It¡¯s obvious that she dislikes him. Only Remy would still keep a good attitude whereas other men might not dare approach me anymore.¡± Elisa sighed. ¡°Because of my family¡¯s attitude, I¡¯m confused and don¡¯t know whether to reciprocate Remy¡¯s feelings.¡± Serenity looked at her and said, ¡°Aunt Audrey only disagrees because Remy¡¯s hometown is too far away. She likes Remy as a person. She also likes the Johnsons.¡± ¡°I know it¡¯s far away, but Remy has been working in Wiltspoon for a long time. If I¡¯m with him, I¡¯ll stay in Wiltspoon more often. My mother said that she¡¯ll only agree to us being together if Remy marries into my family and bes a permanent resident in Wiltspoon. ¡°Remy is willing, but I don¡¯t want him to marry into my family. I already have two older brothers. If Remy marnes into my family, we¡¯ll be criticized.¡± Elisa had feelings for Remy. If he considered what was best for her, she had to think for him too. She did not want him to sacrifice so much for her. ¡°Oh, well. We¡¯ll just take our time. My mother will agree to it one day. If she doesn¡¯t, Remy and I will just continue to date forever and not get married. That way, she¡¯ll start to panic.¡± Serenityforted her ¡°Aunt Audrey will agree. After all, Remy¡¯s a good man, and he¡¯s a good match for you Manydies want to marry the sons of the Johnson family in Annenburg ¡± ¡°I know That¡¯s why I cherish him, and I don¡¯t want to give up easily.¡± Back when Elisa used to like Zachary, no one supported her, and she persisted for several years. Chapter 1594 2/2 Now, she and Remy liked each other. It was rare for people like them to have a simr background and love each other. Elisa would also not give up because of her family¡¯s objections. She had to fight for her own happiness. ¡°All the best! I¡¯m waiting for your wedding invitation!¡± ¡°Mine won¡¯t be so soon, but yours is!¡± is!¡± 1 Serenityughed. Her wedding wasing soon. ¡°Are you freeter? Let¡¯s have lunch together.¡± ¡°Remy didn¡¯t ask you out for lunch?¡± Serenity jokingly asked. Chapter 1595 Chapter 1595 Chapter 1595 Elisa smiled and said, ¡°Remy¡¯s very busy today. Besides sending me flowers and love letters, he only sends me a few messages every day. ¡°His sister¨Cinw is about to give birth, so he said that he¡¯ll have to finish his work as soon as possible. and return to Annenburg.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Jane is pregnant with twins. Most twins are born prematurely. She told me that she expects to give birth in June. Now it¡¯s mid¨CMay, so it¡¯s about time.¡± At the mention of pregnancy, Elisa wanted to ask Serenity if she had any news, but Elisa gave up when the words came to her lips. Serenity was too busy with work now and her attention was diverted, so she did not have time to worry about pregnancy. If Elisa mentioned it, Serenity would feel sad again ¡°I¡¯ll pick Zachary up from workter, so I can¡¯t apany you for lunch¡± Elisa understood and said, ¡°Oh, okay. Should I also go to Remy¡¯s office to pick him up? Seren, what do you think his expression will be like when he sees me?¡± ¡°He¡¯ll be ecstatic!¡± The two of them had not officiated their rtionship as boyfriend and girlfriend If Elisa took the initiative. to look for Remy, it would be seen as a response, and he would certainly be ecstatic Not long after, Elisa left Serenity¡¯s bookstore. Serenity did not meet Zachary at noon because she felt that his lunch hour was too short. She did not close the store untilte in the evening and went to Spring Blossoms first. Camryn and Callum did not make much progress either. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Callum was pursuing Camryn, but Camryn still rejected his feelings. Callum told Zachary privately that it was very difficult to chase after his wife. He envied Zachary and Serenity for getting their marriage license upon their first meeting, so Zachary did not have to chase after Serenity. Zachary felt likeughing. He had conflicts with Serenity before they got to where they were today. His younger brothers witnessed how he went crazy for Serenity. Even though Callum had not won over Camryn yet, he at least made some moves. Kevin and Hayden had zero progress. Grandma May was not in a hurry. Regardless, she only gave them a one¨Cyear deadline. It was Kevin¡¯s business as to how he wanted to meet the deadline. ¡°Serenity, you¡¯re here.¡± As soon as Serenity entered the store, Camryn heard her footsteps. She turned to face Serenity with a smile. Chapter 565 2/7 ¡°You have really good ears.¡± Serenity put a box of pastries in front of Camryn and said, ¡°I passed by a bakery and bought several boxes of freshly baked pastries. I tasted them and thought that they were delicious, so I got you a box.¡± Camryn did not refuse and thanked her with a smile. She also liked to eat desserts, as they were the key to a woman¡¯s heart. ¡°Camryn, I¡¯m here to get the bouquet I ordered.¡± Camryn smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s ready for you.¡± ¼× She got up to fetch the bouquet that had been wrapped long ago and handed it to Serenity. Serenity took the bouquet. ¡°Thanks.¡± ¡°I should be the one to say thank you. You always support my business.¡± Serenity looked at her and felt that Camryn seemed to be a little thinner. She asked, ¡°Camryn, have your not been eating properly recently? I think you¡¯ve lost some weight. Are your aunts still bothering you?¡± ¡°They won¡¯t give up, but they can¡¯t gain anything from me either.¡± It had been two months since Camryn¡¯s mother went to jail. Camryn had already asked Dalton to take over Newman Enterprise. ¡°Yesterday, I just fired my aunts¡® sons. They gathered some people in the office and made a fuss. It had a negative impact on thepany.¡± Camryn¡¯s cousins relied on their rtionship with their uncle to dominate Newman Enterprise. For the sake of his two sisters, Mr. Newman often turned a blind eye. Camryn would not spoil them. They wanted a share of Newman Enterprise, so Camryn would not keep them. Thus, she seized the opportunity to fire all her cousins from Newman Enterprise. If her guess was correct, her two aunts would soone to trouble her again. However, Camryn was not afraid of them. ¡°Just fire them if they¡¯re ipetent. There¡¯s no need to consider blood rtionships. They weren¡¯t nice to you in the first ce. Serenity knew all about what Camryn¡¯s aunts did to Camryn. Chapter 1596 Chapter 1596 Chapter 1596 Amy and Brenda could not stand the sight of Camryn doing well. Camryn had already taken control of Newman Enterprise. Serenity was aware of that because Zachary told her about it. Camryn knew that her little tricks were obvious to the eyes of the Yorks. She did not hide anything deliberately when she talked to Serenity. She said, ¡°No one can snatch the things that belong to my brother and I.¡± Camryn would not take everything from the Newman family. She would pass her brother¡¯s share to him after he was old enough to manage it. As for Carrie, Camryn never thought of her. ¡°Let us know if you need help. We¡¯ll help however we can.¡± ¡°Thank you. I can still manage for now. Dal is helping me out too.¡± There was Callum too. Camryn wanted to free herself from Callum desperately. She did not want to owe him a favor, but she had to admit that she would have more trouble if she did not have him backing her. In the end, she still owed him a big favor. That guy was bing a bigger bully. He was keeping her on a tight leash. Camryn felt powerless against him. ¡°Callum can help you too.¡± Camryn did not say a word. Speak of the devil. Callum arrived at the florist. He was holding a bouquet, but it was not real flowers. It was a bouquet made of hundred¨Cdor bills. Seeing that her brother¨Cinw hade, Serenity said to Camryn, ¡°Camryn, I have to deliver my flowers. Let¡¯s talk again another day.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Camryn had heard the familiar sounds of Callum¡¯s footsteps too. She forced herself to see Serenity off calmly. ¡°Serenity,¡± Callum called out. ¡°Hey, your brother¡¯s still at the office, right?¡± Callum replied, ¡°Yes, he is. I got off work early.¡± Serenity smiled She told Camryn that she did not have to see her off. She got into her car and left. Callum only handed the money bouquet into Camryn¡¯s arms after his sister¨Cinw left. ¡°This is for you.¡± ¡°I have lots of flowers in my shop. I don¡¯t need you to give me flowers.¡± Camryn was about to return the money flowers to Callum. ¡°Give it a touch. My bouquet is different from the flowers in your shop.¡± Camryn instinctively touched the flowers. After feeling it, she was even more determined to refuse the bouquet. She did notck money anymore. He did not have to give her money in the name of giving her a bouquet of dor bills. ¡°If you refuse, I¡¯ll throw it into the trash can.¡± Camryn was speechless. ¡°If you refuse the flowers, it means that you think my bouquet isn¡¯t big enough. I¡¯ll prepare a bigger one for you until you¡¯re willing to ept it.¡± Camryn¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Callum, you¡¯re so shameless.¡± ¡°I¡¯m shameless, and I¡¯ve decided to cling to you. What can you do about this?¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. Camryn had no words.. If she were not blind, she would definitely have kicked him. What a bully. ¡°You¡¯ve always been described as gentle and cultured, Mr. Callum.¡± ¡°That¡¯s what other people think. How many people involved in the business world are truly well- mannered? They¡¯re all cruel and heartless. Moreover¡­¡± Callum approached Camryn. He was about to kiss her pretty lips. He said hoarsely, ¡°Being shameless is the only effective way to handle you.¡± Camryn was so angry that she wanted to beat him up. Chapter 1597 Chapter 1597 Chapter 1597 ¡°Camryn.¡± Callum¡¯s gaze on her red lips was getting more passionate. Camryn could not see, but she could feel the changes in him. His voice became raspier when he called her name. He was thinking of taking advantage of her again, Upon realizing that, Camryn quickly stepped back. She had the huge bouquet of money flowers the bully forcefully gave her. She moved further backward hastily, and she knocked into a flower pot. When Camryn was about to fall, a pair of strong, huge hands rescued her. Callum quickly encircled her waist and pulled her back into his embrace. It felt good when his empty arms surrounded a soft, warm body. Upon regaining herposure. Camryn started resisting. She eximed softly, ¡°Let me go, Callum.¡± There were still employees in her store. The two store assistants and two bodyguards were all watching the street. They did not see what Mr. York had done. ¡°I was saving you, not taking advantage of you,¡± Callum whispered in Camryn¡¯s ears. He could not resist pecking her cheek too. He chuckled when he felt her shudder. It turned out that she was quite sensitive. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. After discovering her sensitive spot, he knew how to tease her. ¡°Callum York!¡± Camryn was very sensitive. She could not help but tremble after being pecked. ¡°Thank me.¡± Camryn went silent and finally gave in. She raised her head and faced him with a sincere expression. Her red lips moved. She said, ¡°Thank you for saving me, Callum.¡± Callum¡¯s name had never sounded so pleasant as it did at that moment. His bones felt like they were going soft when his name escaped Camryn¡¯s lips. Unfortunately, they were at her flower shop. He could not do more wicked things. ¡°Just one sentence?¡± Camryn was about to go crazy. What else did he want? ¡°Treat me to a meal.¡± Again? After a moment of speechlessness, Camryn said, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll treat you to a meal. We¡¯ll eat in my store. I¡¯ll cook for you.¡± ¡°You can cook?¡± ¡°No.¡± Camryn would let him see that she, a blind person, could not prepare a hearty, nutritious meal filled with love for her significant other like other women. ¡°You don¡¯t have to cook since you have bad eyesight, I¡¯m more than happy if you get food delivered and have it with me, but I don¡¯t want you cooking. I¡¯m scared you might cut or scald yourself when cutting or cooking something. If you want to eat at home, I¡¯ll cook.¡± Camryn was speechless. How did the York family raise a man like that? The Yorks were rich. They were the wealthiest family in Wiltspoon, but every man in the family knew how to cook and could adapt well. They did not have the arrogance usually associated with wealthy sons. Old Mrs. York was probablyughing smugly somewhere. Her teachings have shown excellent results. All the boys¡® admirers would be satisfied with them. It seemed like the admirers could not resist such outstanding men too. Callum finally released Camryn. He had no choice as people were walking by on the street. Camryn got shy easily too. If he were to give her a deep kiss, she would definitely avoid him for half a month again. ¡°Sit here.¡± Chapter 1598 Chapter 1598 Chapter 1598 Callum led Camryn to the cashier and made her sit. ¡°I¡¯ll go and cook.¡± Camryn was stunned. ¡°Are you really cooking?¡± Her words earlier were said on purpose to make him understand that she was blind and had many inconveniences in her life. If they were to date each other, she would be a burden to him. In a way, she wanted to make him give up on her. ¡°You can try out my cooking.¡± Callum bent over and whispered in her ear, ¡°There¡¯s a saying that the way to a person¡¯s heart is through their stomach. Why didn¡¯t I think of this?¡± Camryn said, ¡°Callum, am I really worth this?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Camryn did not say anything more. ¡°You can either show off or disassemble this bouquet, but don¡¯t return the money to me. If not, I¡¯ll get really angry. You¡¯ve experienced the consequences of me getting angry before.¡± Camryn was speechless again. She was getting increasingly helpless whenever she faced this bully There was a simple kitchen inside the flower shop. In fact, it was just a table ced in an empty area. Cooking could be done with the portable gas stove and rice cooker on the table. Callum looked around, but he did not see any ingredients. ¡°Camryn, didn¡¯t you buy any ingredients?¡± ¡°No.¡± She had nned to get food delivered. As Callum washed the rice, he said, ¡°I¡¯ll head to the supermarket nearby after the rice starts cooking. What do you want to eat? Will your employees join us?¡± The store assistants had sharp ears. They replied simultaneously, ¡°We¡¯ll grab fast food, Mr. York. You don¡¯t have to make our share.¡± Callum hummed in acknowledgment. Camryn¡¯s employees were good at reading the atmosphere. He would ask Camryn to increase their sry if the shop¡¯s business was great. A few minutester, Callum left Spring Blossoms to purchase ingredients. After he returned, he instructed the two bodyguards, ¡°You guys can go and eat first.¡± Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. The bodyguards replied respectfully. They went to a nearby fast food chain with the two store assistants to grab their meals. However, after they left, Camryn¡¯s cousins, whom she had fired, came over aggressively while Callum was washing the ingredients. After the cousins got out of the car, they did not spot the York family¡¯s bodyguards, who were always. Chai protecting Camryn, or any store assistants. There was only Camryn. They got even more arrogant. The eldest cousin waved his hand and said to his brothers, ¡°Smash her flower shop!¡± Camryn had fired all of them and chased them out of Newman Enterprise. She had obstructed their road. to riches. After all, they could actually get a decent sum of extra money as they were Mr. Newman¡¯s biological nephews. Camryn had severed their way of getting money. Stopping them from obtaining money was akin to killing their parents. They found it uneptable if they did not teach her a lesson. If Camryn was capable, she could send all of them to prison. They would wait and see if she could still walk with her head held high among the rtives. It would be weird if she did not get scolded badly. She was a heartless blind person. The Chandlers and Joyners did not expect the blind person with such little presence to be so formidable. After their uncle lost his freedom, Camryn was able to convince Dalton to help her take control of the What was more infuriating was that this was all done under their noses. They even thought since their uncle was not in thepany, they could take over the highest position as his nephews. Unexpectedly, aside from several unimportant managers who usually clung to them, everyone else in thepany ignored them. That blind Camryn did not know anything. However, she made all the senior managers acknowledge her taking over Newman Enterprise with Dalton¡¯s help. What could a blind person do? Camryn¡¯s cousins thought Dalton was using her identity as the eldest youngdy of the Newman family to control people. His aim could be to have Newman Enterprise for himself, but the blind woman did not. know she was being used. She even joined hands with Dalton to chase them out of Newman Enterprise. Even if they had the ambitions and wanted to take the opportunity to split Newman Enterprise among themselves, at least thepany was not falling into an outsider¡¯s hands. They were Mr. Newman¡¯s biological nephews. Their mothers were the respectabledies of the Newman family. Were they not better than Dalton, an outsider? Chapter 1599 Chapter 1599 Chapter 1599 With orders barking from Camryn¡¯s eldest cousin, his brothers and cousins immediately took action. They pushed over her flower pots that were ced on the racks. ¡°What are you guys doing?¡± Camryn got up and questioned them sternly. Mr. Chandler walked over furiously. ¡°What are we doing? Blind woman, don¡¯t me us for being inhumane when you were also unkind. Guys, continue smashing everything up! ¡°Are you still counting money? You¡¯re still counting your money after blocking our road to riches.¡± Upon seeing the bouquet of money flowers, Mr. Chandler stretched his hand to snatch the bouquet over without even thinking. However, the bouquet was taken away again in the blink of an eye. It was not Camryn who did it. It was Callum. The Chandlers and Joyners knew Mr. Callum fancied Camryn and was pursuing her passionately. If it were not for Callum¡¯s identity and status, the Joyners and Chandlers would have joined hands and defeated Camryn to the extent she could not live in the Newmans¡® vi. Mr. Chandler did not expect Callum to be here. Did the car at the door belong to Mr. Callum? They thought someone had parked their car there temporarily. ¡°Mr. Y¨CYork?¡± Mr. Chandler stammered. Callum had an apron around him to prevent his suit from getting dirty. He was in the middle of cutting. vegetables, so he had not put down the knife. He had the knife in one hand and snatched the money flowers back with the other. His handsome face was dark and his gaze was frosty. He red at Mr. Chandler coldly. ¡°What are you guys doing?¡± Callum questioned icily. Upon seeing the flower racks that were pushed over, his expression turned even colder. ¡°Did youe here to destroy the shop?¡± Mr. Chandler said, ¡°Mr. York, we didn¡¯te to destroy the shop. They simply knocked into the rack, and it toppled over.¡± When facing the cold and icy Mr. York, Mr. Chandler turned timid immediately. He lost the fiery arrogance. he had just now. Other people were also stunned. It turned out that Mr. York was there too. Although they had several people and Callum was alone, they were still cowards before Callum. No one dared touch even a strand of his hair. That would be equivalent to having a death wish. ¡°Do you think I¡¯m deaf? I heard everything. You guys are here to destroy the shop. I heard all the words you said earlier. How dare you snatch the money bouquet I gave to my fianc¨¦e? Do you think you have too many hands to spare?¡± Callum was not easily fooled¨Che heard everything. Mr. Chandler smiled and said sheepishly, ¡°Mr. Callum, I¡­ I was wrong. Sorry, Camryn. I shouldn¡¯t have snatched your money bouquet.¡± Then, he turned to re at his brothers and said fiercely, ¡°What are you guys still standing here for? Faster help Camryn get the rack up. We¡¯llpensate all the broken flower pots based on their original prices.¡± The other people snapped back to their senses. They quickly went forward and got the rack they pushed over back up. However, they were at their wits¡® end because the potted nts were damaged and scattered all over the floor, as their pots were destroyed. After a short while, they started moving again. There were many empty pots in Camryn¡¯s store. They moved small empty flower pots over and squatted down. They scooped the soil on the floor and ced them into the new pots. They continued repotting the scattered flowers with the new pots. When the bodyguards and store assistants, who had been eating at the nearby fast food store, saw the commotion in the flower shop, they rushed back without finishing their food. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Upon seeing the bodyguards return, Callum said to them, ¡°Watch them clean up. I¡¯m going to continue. cooking.¡± Chapter 1600 Chapter 1600 Chapter 1600 After that, Callum ced the money bouquet he had snatched back into Camryn¡¯s arms. He said gently,¡± Camryn, you can continue counting the money. The food will be ready soon. ¡°You don¡¯t have to mind those people. I¡¯m here. I¡¯ll even hold the sky up if it falls down.¡± After speaking, Callum red at Mr. Chandler again. ¡°Don¡¯t you know Camryn is my fianc¨¦e ? You dared touch my fianc¨¦e. How bold of the Chandler family.¡± Those words wereced with threats. Mr. Chandler¡¯s expression changed. He quickly said, ¡°It¡¯s a misunderstanding, Mr. York. We¡­ We realize our mistakes. We¡¯re Camryn¡¯s cousins. My mom¡¯s her aunt. We¡¯re rtives.¡± Callum let out a cold hmph. ¡°My Camryn doesn¡¯t want either of your families.¡± Camryn had a close rtionship with her youngest aunt. Her youngest aunt was the one who saved her life. However, Callum did not have the chance to meet Aunt Evelyn, who had rescued Camryn, because she married someone who lived far away. If he had the chance to meet her, he would surely treat her as his own aunt. ¡°Callum.¡± Camryn, who had not spoken all along, finally spoke. She said to Callum, ¡°I¡¯ll deal with them. You can continue cooking. I¡¯m hungry.¡± ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll get cooking now.¡± Callum could not be bothered to threaten Mr. Chandler further because his fianc¨¦e said she was hungry. His fianc¨¦e would not be at a disadvantage anyway. Callum returned to the simple kitchen to continue cooking with a knife in hand. The Chandlers and Joyners were shocked. The great Mr. Callum York was wearing an apron without even taking off his suit and necktie to cook for Camryn. He did not have the attitude of a wealthy man at all. Instead, he looked like an ordinary person. How deeply did he like Camryn to be willing to do that? Mr. Chandler thought he should remind his mother to take Mr. Callum¡¯s feelings for Camryn seriously. Mr. Callum was being earnest. He was not simply looking for amusement by dating a blind person. The young masters of the York family did not seem to fool around with feelings in general. They would always make a move after narrowing down on a target. They were loyal lovers who would not change. their targets. Camryn said to her eldest cousin indifferently, ¡°There are 60 potted nts in each rack. You guys pushed over four of my racks, which brings it to a total of 240 nts. 120 of them are small nts, and their price. ranges from 30 to 50 dors. I¡¯ll take the mean and charge you 40 each. The other 120 nts are medium- sized and are sold for 50 to 100 dors. I¡¯ll charge you 80 dors each.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Each potted flower had its own pots, but they have been destroyed by you guys. You all used my new Chapter 1600 pots, and they require money too. I¡¯ll charge 20 and 50 dors for small- and medium¨Csized pots, respectively. Edward said he¡¯llpensate me ording to the original prices. ¡°You may pay me a total of 22,800 dors. I¡¯ve also given you a discount because we¡¯re cousins.¡± Edward Chandler said, ¡°Camryn, are you robbing a bank?¡± They had topensate more than twenty grand for just pushing over several racks. ¡°Is there a bank that¡¯s only worth this much? Robbing such a bank will be a great loss.¡± Edward was speechless. 2/2 ¡°Are you guys going to pay up ording to the cost prices? Or do you want topensate me with more money after I¡¯ve called the police to handle this?¡± The cousins scolded Camryn inwardly for being evil. At that moment, Callum walked out with a knife. The store assistants and bodyguards kept staring at them too. They turned into cowards again. Edward said, ¡°We¡¯ll pay you back. How much was it again? I¡¯ll pay you now.¡± ¡°22,800 dors. You can scan my QR code, but I prefer cash.¡± ¡°Give her cash,¡± Callum requested. His fianc¨¦e¡¯s phone was an old model. If the payment were made through a QR code, the store assistant would receive the money and withdraw it as cash for Camryn. It would be troublesome. Chapter 1601 Chapter 1601 Chapter 1601 ¡°Mr. York, we probably don¡¯t have that much cash on us.¡± Mr. Chandler said, ¡°Can we do it by Apple Pay instead?¡± ¡°There¡¯s a bank opposite here. You guys must¡¯ve brought your bank cards, right? Just go there and withdraw some cash. Since Camryn said she wanted cash, you guys have to pay her cash.¡± Under Callum¡¯s stern eye, Edward had no choice but to have his cousin from the Joyner family withdraw twenty thousand dors from the bank opposite. After that, the cousins fished out all the cash from their wallets and managed to gather 22,800 dors. ¡°Camryn, this is ourpensation.¡± Mr. Chandler handed a stack of bills to Camryn. Camryn epted the money and started counting it speedily. After a moment, she said, ¡°The amount is correct. Do you have other business? If there¡¯s nothing else, you can leave.¡± Those people exchanged nces. In the end, their gazes fell on Edward. He was the eldest amongst them. They treated him as their leader. ¡°Camryn, we¡¯re cousins by blood. Uncle Cain and Aunt Paige are in prison. No matter what, he¡¯s still your biological uncle. About your dad¡­ Aunt Paige is your mother. Don¡¯t burn all your bridges. ¡°You may have taken over Newman Enterprise, but you¡¯re blind. Even if there¡¯s Mr. Mitchell helping you, he¡¯s still an outsider, whereas we¡¯re cousins. We can still help you if any problems arise because we¡¯re rtives and family. Mr. Mitchell might even be snickering behind the scenes because you¡¯ve chased us out of Newman Enterprise. ¡°Camryn, we¡¯ve been in Newman Enterprise longer than the time you took over it. We know that Mr. Mitchell usually curries favor with Uncle Cain to obtain his trust. Now that Uncle Cain is in trouble, Mr. Mitchell definitely wants to monopolize Newman Enterprise. He¡¯s just using you.¡± The Chandler and Joyner brothers came to destroy the shop to vent their anger. They also wanted to force Camryn to hire them back to Newman Enterprise. Although Callum¡¯s presence had forced them topensate for Camryn¡¯s losses, they still had to state their intentions. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. ¡°That¡¯s right. We¡¯re cousins. We¡¯re rtives and family. However, you would rather trust Mr. Mitchell instead of us. He harbors evil intentions and is just using you. Think about it. You¡¯ve never handled business at Newman Enterprise before and aren¡¯t skilled in managing thepany. Besides, you¡¯re blind too. Mr. Mitchell can fool you however he wants. ¡°He might embezzlepany funds and leave an empty establishment that¡¯s saddled with debt to you to make the Newmans go bankrupt. How are you going to exin this to Trenton after he bes an adult?¡± The Joyner brothers agreed with Edward. Trenton was not even aware that his family had undergone drastic changes yet. Camryn had kept the secret well to prevent it from affecting his examinations After his final exam ended, she would tell her brother everything clearly If he were to hate her for it, she would ept it. On the other hand, if he could understand her, she would be thankful for her brother¡¯s maturity. Trenton would be able to inherit the Newman family¡¯s assets Camryn would not take it all for herself. However, that was between them siblings. It had nothing to do with the Joyner and Chandler brothers. Even if Camryn and Trenton were to be enemies, it was still their issue Camryn said coldly, ¡°You all had gathered and caused amotion in thepany. It left a terrible impression I had no choice but to fire you all ¡°Since I already did it, I¡¯m not scared of you guys pestering me. Do you think I¡¯m unaware of everything you¡¯ve done in Newman Enterprise? When Uncle Cain managed thepany, you guys used your connection as his nephew to abuse your power and earned extra money Do you think I didn¡¯t know that? ¡°If you guys want me to show evidence to handle this matter, the consequences won¡¯t be as simple as leaving Newman Enterprise¡± Camryn said with a stern voice. ¡°You¡¯re all aware of what happened to my uncle and mother. Do you think your rtionship with me can surpass that of my mother and me¡± She could even send her stepfather to jail, not to mention her cousins After chasing the Chandlers and Joyners out of Newman Enterprise, everyone in thepany was happy It was obvious how hateful these people had been in thepany Camryn¡¯s words had sessfully shocked her cousins They had underestimated this blind girl all along Chapter 1602 Chapter 1602 Chapter 1602 She had been living silently with minimal presence. Even when she spoke asionally, she was soft- spoken. They did not expect that the most ruthless person would be her. She showed no mercy at all. ¡°As for Mr. Mitchell, I trust him fully. I only work with people I don¡¯t doubt.¡± Everybody opened their mouths to say something, but nothing came out in the end. They knew their past actions best. Camryn could swiftly gain control of everything in Newman Enterprise with Dalton¡¯s help. Maybe she really had evidence of them earning a side ie and embezzling funds. ¡°Camryn¡­ I hope you don¡¯t regret this in the future Uncle Abel wouldn¡¯t be able to rest in peace if Newman Enterprise were to be passed to someone else when you¡¯re in charge of it¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Edward left those words and said to his brothers, ¡°Let¡¯s go Camryn said coldly, ¡°Goodbye. I won¡¯t be seeing you guys off¡± The cousins left angrily. After they were gone, Callum instructed the bodyguards and store assistants, ¡°ce the potted nts back onto the rack.¡± Those people paid Camryn over twenty grand, but they forgot to take those flowers with them. They deserve to be scammed. Callum said to his fianc¨¦e, ¡°If theye and make a fuss again, give me a call. I¡¯ll bring people over to beat them up. They¡¯ll be good after that.¡± ¡°Mr. Callum, the two of us are enough to beat them up for them to be looking for their teeth on the ground,¡± said a bodyguard. Mr. Callum was ignoring their presence. All of the York family¡¯s bodyguards were good at fighting. The other bodyguard tugged his partner. How stupid was he? It was Mr. Callum¡¯s chance to rescue the damsel in distress. Why did he have to butt in? The bodyguard who was tugged only realized it then. He quickly went to move the flowers and did not dare look at Mr. Callum¡¯s dark face. Camryn said, ¡°They¡¯re not that bold. They only came in and smashed my pots because they saw I was alone. If they had known you were here, they wouldn¡¯t have dared push the racks.¡± Camryn patted the stack of money. ¡°Well, they bought a lesson at the price of more than twenty grand.¡± Callum smiled and said, ¡°You can continue counting the money. I¡¯m going to cook.¡± After speaking, he turned to continue preparing their dinner. Camryn kept quiet for a moment and touched the bouquet of money flowers. She had plucked several money petals off it. She thought the flowers were too eye-catching and showy. She would get robbed anytime if she brought the bouquet out. Therefore, she took the petals, which were folded from dor bills, off and folded them nicely to be returned to Callumter. Camryn did not want his money. She did notck money. Not to mention that she already had Newman Enterprise¡¯s business in her grasp. Even if she did not, she would not starve with Spring Blossom¡¯s business. Usually, Dal would even give her some money. Chapter 1603 Chapter 1603 Chapter 1603 Meanwhile, at York Corporation, Zachary had already stopped working. He knew Serenity woulde to pick him up from work, so he went downstairs early to wait at the building¡¯s entrance. When he went downstairs, it was time when people got off work too. The employees greeted him respectfully when they saw him. Upon seeing him standing at the entrance, several senior managers thought something had happened. They stopped and asked him, ¡°Mr. York, is something wrong?¡± ¡°Nothing. I¡¯m waiting for Seren. You can get off work or go to your appointments. Go on.¡± Everyone was speechless. No wonder Mr. York came downstairs so early. It turned out that Mrs. York wasing. Seren only came after stopping by Spring Blossoms to get flowers. She got stuck in the jam as it was rush hour on her way there. When she reached York Corporation, most employees had already left thepany. Upon driving her car into the building, the tall, handsome figure appeared within her sight. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. There was still some distance between the husband and wife. Zachary was standing alone at the entrance. He did not let bodyguards follow him, but Serenity still recognized her man at first nce. He was eye-catching no matter where he was. Tall, good-looking, and impressive. Usually, Serenity would park her car in the parking lot whenever she came to York Corporation. Now that people had gotten off work, she stopped her car in front of the building¡¯s entrance. A smile appeared on Zachary¡¯s handsome face when he saw his beloved wife¡¯s car. He walked over even before Serenity got out of the car. Serenity remained in the car when she saw him approaching. She unlocked the doors and let Zachary hop in. Zachary saw a bouquet of fresh roses lying on the passenger seat. He picked it up and sat down. With a smile on his face, he said, ¡°Is this bouquet for me?¡± ¡°If I were to say it was for another man, would you bring a team of people along to snatch it back?¡± Zachary said bossily, ¡°Of course. The roses my wife bought can only be given to me. Don¡¯t you dare give them to another man.¡± Serenity grinned and said, ¡°I don¡¯t have other men.¡± Zachary stretched his hand to pinch her face lightly. ¡°Having me is enough. Why did you just arrive? If you hade earlier to give me the flowers, I could¡¯ve gotten off work with the flowers in my arms. The entirepany would¡¯ve seen it.¡± ¡°We¡¯ve been husband and wife for so long. Why should we show off?¡± Serenity started driving as she spoke. The bodyguards saw their boss getting into Mrs. York¡¯s car. They proceeded to get into their car and followed the couple. ¡°I want to show off. It¡¯s something that¡¯s worth showing off.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Traffic was pretty heavy, so I waste.¡± ¡°You cane earlier next time.¡± ¡°If I do that, it¡¯ll affect your work.¡± Zachary pressed his lips together. He wanted to say that her presence would not affect his work at all. On the contrary, he would be more motivated with her there. ¡°Have you seen Callum?¡± Zachary suddenly asked. ¡°That boy snuck out early. Don¡¯t think I¡¯m not aware of it.¡± ¡°You used to sneak off often too. He¡¯s your brother. So what if he sneaks out? You can be more tolerant.¡± After a moment of silence, he said, ¡°They¡¯re all so clever to have curried favor with you. You¡¯ll always back them up, especially Rowan. When he first met you, he kept calling you his sister-inw. He had such a sweet mouth.¡± Chapter 1604 Chapter 1604 Chapter 1604 Serenity smiled. She did not think her brothers-inw were ying up to her. She simply thought they respected her as their eldest sister-inw a lot. Published by N?v''elD/rama.Org. She also knew that it was because Zachary loved her. Grandma May adored her too. However, she would not be haughty because of the love she received. ¡°Callum and Camryn are still the same. I think their progress is pretty slow.¡± Zachary said smugly. ¡°They can¡¯tpare to me Ipleted everything in one go. Serenity turned to nce at him. She mocked him, ¡°Your face was as tight as marble when we got our marriage license back then. I was afraid people would misunderstand that I forced you to register our marriage with a gun.¡± Zachary was speechless. He had to admit that he did not want to get married back then. He was hoping she would go back on her word. However, it turned out that she was in a rush to get a marriage license. Just like that, both of them registered their marriage. It was primarily because he was forced by Grandma May to repay her debt in her stead. There were many ways to repay kindness, but he did not necessarily have to marry Serenity. He felt Grandma May had chosen Serenity to be her granddaughter-inw because Serenity had tricked her He only found out the true reason after getting their marriage license. Of course, Zachary felt that he was now living a happy life. It was because he had Serenity. ¡°After a discussion with Elisa, we decided to expand our investment. There are many towns under the jurisdiction of the town council in my hometown. The situations of those towns are pretty much the same. All the youngsters are out working, and the people who stayed behind are all elderly and children. ¡°Without manpower in the house, the farms are abandoned. I¡¯ll go and check the ce out with Elisa tomorrow. We¡¯ll sign contracts if negotiations are sessful and rent morend.¡± Zachary said gently, ¡°You two can discuss it and decide. I¡¯ll always support you. Just let me know if you need any help. Whether you require more capital or investments, I¡¯ll give it to you.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll borrow the money from you and return it after earning the cost back.¡± ¡°We¡¯re husband and wife. What¡¯s mine is yours, and what belongs to you is still yours. You don¡¯t have to separate things so clearly between us. You¡¯re not allowed to mention borrowing money in front of me anymore. Serenity remembered taking over several small businesses from Zachary as practice. He ced full trust in her She was not someone who lost their conscience after seeing money either. She said, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll be using your money first.¡± She would return the money to him after they started gaining profit Serenity was already helping Zachary to manage his small businesses. She could include the money she would be returning to him into the ounts and transfer it to him afterward. It was not that she wanted to draw a clear line between them. She simply wished to be more independent as it was her first time making an investment and running a big business. ¡°Elisa thinks we should establish a vegetablepany by purchasing an office and hiring a few professional managers. I agree with her suggestion. I¡¯ll call Jas to tell her about it after dinner.¡± It was a joint investment by the three of them. She had to inform Jasmine about it. Zachary hummed in agreement. ¡°It¡¯s true that apany should be established. It¡¯ll be easier for other people to remember you guys during business negotiations.¡± ¡°Although Elisa has no prior business experience, she¡¯s indeed Aunt Audrey¡¯s daughter. She thinks way ahead of me.¡± ¡°Children born into a family of business people are more or less exposed to it.¡± Zachary agreed that Elisa was more insightful about business than his beloved wife for now. Serenity was still learning. She would be better than Elisa after bing a qualified wife to the head of the family in the future. Elisa had a straightforward personality, but she did not have enough patience. It was just the start. With her broad range of interests, she would definitely do nothing after the business got on track. Moreover, Elisa disliked business engagements. Chapter 1605 Chapter 1605 Chapter 1605 Grandma May had mentioned that even though Elisa had a simr social status to Zachary, she was not suitable to be the wife of the York family¡¯s head. ¡°Let¡¯s eat at a hotel. You still have a business engagement. We don¡¯t have to travel a long distance back. home.¡± ¡°It¡¯s up to you. Serenity smiled. Although her rtionship with Zachary was not dramatic, he started respecting her and prioritizing her wishes more. Their days were ordinary yet fulfilling and sweet. Zachary often said he still wanted to be with her in another life. Serenity got greedy too. She also thought of marrying him and being husband and wife again in their next lifetime. While in the Lewis family¡¯s house, Mrs. Lewis put down her phone with a grim expression. Although Mr. Lewis sat opposite her and was holding a newspaper, he had been paying attention to his wife¡¯s expression. He heard the conversation between his wife and their youngest son too. ¡°What happened again? You look awful. You¡¯ve been this way a lottely. You¡¯re angry and in a bad mood every day. You¡¯re starting to look older. Don¡¯t be angry anymore. I¡¯ll apany you to get a facial done tomorrow to maintain your skin.¡± Mrs. Lewis red at her useless husband. She said furiously, ¡°I¡¯m a senior citizen. If I look old, then so be it. With such a disobedient son, it¡¯s no wonder I¡¯ll get older from getting angry. You only read the newspaper all the time and never thought of scolding your son. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Duncan became this spoiled because of you!¡± Her son was not listening to her. Mrs. Lewis pushed all the me on her husband. Mr. Lewis smiled. ¡°Yes, yes. I was the one who spoiled him. He learned all the bad things from me and inherited all your good qualities. Duncan is my mom¡¯s favorite grandson. It was her who spoiled him, yet you¡¯re ming me. ¡°There¡¯s a saying that sons don¡¯t listen to their mothers after they grow up. Your son is almost forty. Why are you still controlling him? Besides, even if you wanted to meddle in his affairs, would he let you? ¡°Aren¡¯t you asking for hardships if you insist on meddling in his affairs despite him not allowing you to do it? It¡¯s not like you haven¡¯t experienced being a mother-inw. You already have three daughters-in- law and many grandchildren. Why are you still so anxious? ¡°You can lead a horse to water, but can you make it drink? Duncan doesn¡¯t like Lily. There¡¯s no use in forcing or urging him.¡± Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°Lily had already exined everything to me. She won¡¯t pursue Duncan anymore. She said Duncan had no feelings for her, and she didn¡¯t want to waste time. When she came to Wiltspoon this time, she went to the airport immediately after her business was done. She didn¡¯t even visit our house ¡°Lily¡¯s such a nice girl. Your son is openly blind. He doesn¡¯t like Lily but prefers a divorced woman with a child instead.¡± Mrs. Lewis was mad. However, she could not vent her anger on Liberty. She wanted to target someone, but there was no one for her to target. The anger umted in her heart made her feel extremely ufortable. ¡°Duncan doesn¡¯t like Lily, so I arranged a blind date for him and told him to meet thedy tonight and have a meal together. He didn¡¯t even listen and kept himself busy. To hell with being busy. Why wasn¡¯t he busy when he went to All You Can Eat? Does he think I¡¯m not aware of it?¡± Mrs. Lewis did not bother Liberty, but she knew her son would go to All You Can Eat every day. Her son would always show up in ces where Liberty was present very quickly. It was not a chance meeting but a forced encounter created by the disobedient Duncan after keeping an eye on Liberty. ¡°He already has someone he likes. What use is there in you arranging a blind date for him? Back when he didn¡¯t have anybody he liked, he didn¡¯t even listen to you when you set him up with blind dates.¡± Mr. Lewis advised his wife, ¡°Our children will do fine on their own. You can stop meddling in Duncan¡¯s matters.¡± ¡°Derek Lewis, are you happy that your son likes a divorced woman?¡± Chapter 1606 Chapter 1606 Chapter 1606 Derek said, ¡°I disagree too, but what can I do? That¡¯s Duncan¡¯s decision. He has always disobeyed us.¡± ¡°Well, do you think Liberty will let Serenity know that I talked to her?¡± Mrs. Lewis suddenly asked. ¡°Why did you go and meet Liberty? Didn¡¯t you say Liberty isn¡¯t interested in our son at all? The problem lies with our son.¡± After a moment of silence, Mrs. Lewis replied, ¡°I know the problem doesn¡¯t lie with Liberty, but Duncan refused to listen to us. He¡¯s very stubborn. I had no choice but to deal with it by approaching Liberty I wanted to advise Liberty to cancel her tenancy agreement and move her breakfast ce somewhere else so she can stay away from Duncan. ¡°In the future, if Duncan visits the Yorks, tell Liberty not to visit the Yorks to prevent the two of them from meeting each other. ¡°That said, it¡¯ll be great if Liberty is willing to leave Wiltspoon and live in a ce that Duncan is unaware of I¡¯m ready to pay her a hefty sum as long as she doesn¡¯t meet Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis had long since wanted to do such things. However, Liberty had the Stones and the Yorks backing her. Considering the strong sisterhood between Liberty and Serenity, Serenity would meddle in the matter. Once Serenity did, the Yorks would have a hand in it since Zachary pampered his wife. Until today, Mrs. Lewis could not figure out why Old Mrs. York allowed Zachary to marry Serenity. Also, Old Mrs. York was said to be the one arranging for Callum and Camryn to be together. This olddy¡¯s taste was indeed unique. Her grandsons were all outstanding. Even so, look at the kinds of candidates she picked for her grandsons. Other people might suspect that Old Mrs. York was not the biological grandmother of Zachary and his brothers. When it came to marriage, all couples with wealthy backgrounds were well-matched. ¡°Are you trying to ruin our rtionship with the Yorks?¡± Derek glowered at his wife. Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°Tell me what to do, then. Frankly speaking, I won¡¯t approve of Liberty and Duncan¡¯s marriage unless I¡¯m dead.¡± ¡°It¡¯s too early to say that. Let¡¯s see if your son seeds in pursuing Liberty.¡± Mrs. Lewis responded, ¡°It¡¯s a wise decision to force them apart before Liberty falls in love with Duncan. Duncan is in an unrequited rtionship. He can certainly get over Liberty as long as she leaves Wiltspoon. and never meets him again. ¡°It¡¯s better for him to stay single than marry a divorced woman.¡± Derek asked his wife, ¡°Do you look down on Liberty because she has been divorced or because she comes from a humble background? ¡°Both Her parents have passed away, and her rtives are awful. I¡¯ve seen them all. The Yorks are good- tempered, so they¡¯re not offended by those awful rtives. But I have a short temper,¡± Mrs. Lewis answered disdainfully. ¡°In our circle, there are many rich youngdies for Duncan to pick, yet he doesn¡¯t want any of them. He only likes Liberty. ¡°He might be rough and burly, but he¡¯s merciful. Given that his love for Liberty is extended to her family as well, he might side with Liberty¡¯s awful rtives. They¡¯re like parasites. Once they stick to you, you can never get rid of them. Take Zachary, he did a great job. Those parasites have no chance to depend on him.¡± As soon as Mrs. Lewis finished speaking, she suddenly lifted her phone. She leaped to her feet and said, ¡± No way. We can¡¯t sit down and watch their rtionship develop. I¡¯m going to meet Liberty and talk to her now. I¡¯m just nning to talk to her. I won¡¯t throw my weight around or force her to leave Wiltspoon.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. She just wanted to have a talk with Liberty. Derek promptly called out his wife to stop her. ¡°You want to disturb her at this hour, huh?¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong? The sky isn¡¯tpletely dark yet. It¡¯s only at this time that Liberty is free. Mrs. Lewis insisted on having a talk with Liberty despite being stopped by her husband. Chapter 1607 Chapter 1607 Chapter 1607 Worried that his wife would screw things up, Derek had no choice but to meet Liberty with his wife since he could not stop her. In order to continue talking his wife out of meeting Liberty, Derek asked his chauffeur to drive. The couple was seated in the back. Along the journey, Derek kept advising his wife. He said, ¡°If Duncan finds out that you go and meet Liberty, he¡¯ll surely have a row with you. This will affect your rtionship with him. ¡°If Serenity finds out, it means Zachary will too. You know full well how much he protects and pampers his wife. Liberty is his sister-inw. Forcing Liberty to leave Wiltspoon will stir up a ho¡¯s nest and greatly damage the rtionship between the Lewises and the Yorks.¡± Mrs. Lewis tilted her head and red at her husband before she said, ¡°I¡¯m just going to have a talk with Liberty. I¡¯m not forcing her to leave Wiltspoon either. Why are you nagging at me non-stop? You¡¯re annoying. ¡°The Lewises and the Yorks are family friends. So what if the Yorks find out that I meet Liberty? I¡¯m not going to beat or scold her. All I¡¯m going to do is have a talk with her. The Yorks might be able to ept a daughter-inw with a humble background and both parents dead, but I can¡¯t. ¡°Not everyone can act like the Yorks. I believe most women from the upper ss in Wiltspoon hope their daughters-inw are well-matched to their sons. ¡°Couples have always been equally matched since ancient times. I¡¯m not against Liberty in particr. However, it¡¯ll be hard for a marriage tost long if a couple isn¡¯t well-matched. I¡¯m doing this for their own good so as to avoid things from looking bad when they end up in divorce in the future.¡± Derek was speechless. He knew that what his wife said made sense. ¡°It¡¯s okay to have a talk with Liberty, but don¡¯t talk to her in a domineering tone and aggrieve her.¡± Mrs. Lewis said huffily, ¡°With the Stones and the Yorks backing her, how would I have the audacity to be domineering and cause her grievance? I¡¯m the one feeling aggrieved instead. Despite being your wife, I need to lower myself to beg Liberty to stay away from our son.¡± Derek was not in a position to respond to that. Liberty was unaware that Mr. and Mrs. Lewis wereing to meet her. After Liberty had dinner with Sonny, Sonny wanted to shop around, and she agreed. Just for convenience, she took her son out by riding an e-bike. In fact, Sonny wanted to shop at a mall. The mall had a few floors. Located on the third floor was a yground for kids. A lot of kids enjoyed ying there. Liberty had taken Sonny there twice, and he took a liking to it. After arriving at the supermarket, Liberty and Sonny ran into Hank and Jessica. As Jessica was pregnant, she was released on bail to take care of her baby after Hank and thewyer applied for it. ¡°Dad.¡± Sonny was always happy whenever he saw Hank. That was exactly why the father and the son had a close rtionship. As a result, Serenity and her husband could not be ruthless to the Browns as they often had to think for Sonny. ¡°Sonny?¡± Hank did not expect to meet his ex-wife and son here. When Sonny ran toward him merrily, Hank nced at Jessica before he walked forward and carried his son with a smile. Initially, Jessica was wearing a smile. At the sight of the close interaction between the father and son, her smile disappeared. She was currently pregnant with Hank¡¯s child whom she had always been eager to have. Unfortunately, the child camete. If the child hade earlier, she definitely would not have agreed to be involved in the wrongful act that ruined her life as well as her child¡¯s. She would have done good deeds for her child¡¯s sake. Even though Jessica was out of jail for now, she would need to serve her sentence after she gave birth to her baby. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. For a long period of time, she would be unable to watch her child grow. The child wouldck motherly love. Besides, the fact that shemitted a crime would have a huge impact on the child. Jessica deeply regretted it. It was no usementing it now. Back then, she did not reject Hank outright. She had set her mind on bing Hank¡¯s wife to live in thep of luxury. Little did she know that it was the start of tragedy. She might as well have married an ordinary man. At least, she would be able to lead a in yet happy life. Liberty did not walk toward Hank and Sonny. Standing from a distance, she silently took a glimpse of the two of them before turning her eyes to Jessica. Jessica walked up to Hank shortly. Chapter 1608 Chapter 1608 Chapter 1608 After moving closer, Liberty got a better sight of Jessica. Jessica had thinned down a lot. She had a dullplexion and was dressed in loose clothes. Only those who were sharp-eyed could tell that she was pregnant. ¡°Let¡¯s go, Hank,¡± Jessica said to her husband. Currently, she disliked seeing Hank being close to Sonny. She was afraid that if they got very close, Hank would not take care of her child wholeheartedly. Regardless of whether she gave birth to a son or daughter, the Browns would surely be biased toward Sonny Jessica had to continue serving her sentence in the future, so she would not be able to watch her child grow. If her child turned out to be a girl who failed to please the family, who would know how much the child would suffer when Jessica was not by her side? Therefore, Hank was the child¡¯s support. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Sonny was a lot more fortunate than Jessica¡¯s child. With so many people loving and supporting Sonny, there was no need to worry that he would suffer. ¡°Sonny, what are you nning to buy with Mom?¡± Hank asked his son. Sonny answered, ¡°I¡¯m going to y with Mom. Dad, what do you want to buy?¡± After stealing a nce at Jessica, he fell quiet for a moment. Then, he said politely, ¡°Hi, Jess.¡± Jessica forced a smile. ¡°I¡¯ve just arrived, so I haven¡¯t bought anything. What-do you want, Sonny? I¡¯ll get it for you.¡± Due to Jessica¡¯s situation and interference from Liberty¡¯s grandparents, it had been ages since Hank met his ex-wife, much less his son. Given that he finally met his son, he felt the need to buy him something. The grim smile on Jessica¡¯s face was no longer visible. However, she did not utter a word. At that moment, Liberty walked over. The moment Jessica caught sight of Liberty, her lips twitched. Even so, she remained silent. She was supposed to apologize to Liberty. She was an indirect cause of Liberty¡¯s narrow escape from death. ¡°Liberty,¡± Hank called out. After not seeing her for a long time, he suddenly felt that his ex-wife had turned into a different person. She had be younger, prettier, and more confident. That was how she was before marriage. ¡°Both of you can shop around. I¡¯ll take Sonny to the indoor yground on the third floor for a while.¡± Liberty carried her son out of her ex-husband¡¯s arms. After speaking indifferently, she said to Sonny, ¡°Sonny, let¡¯s go.¡± ¡°Okay. Bye, Dad.¡± Sonny waved at Hank and bade him goodbye. ¡°Liberty, Sonny.¡± All of a sudden, Duncan¡¯s voice rang out. Soon, he strode toward them. The minute Hank saw Duncan, his expression turned grave. Chapter 1609 Chapter 1609 Chapter 1609 ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny¡¯s mannerism toward Duncan and his father, Hank, was the same. Once Sonny saw Duncan, he shook off Liberty¡¯s hand and scurried toward Duncan. Hank¡¯s expression became graver. His parents and elder sister had always nagged him, telling him that Liberty had a pursuer. If he was not going to divorce Jessica and go after Liberty again, Sonny¡¯s father would be someone else. Duncan would most likely be Sonny¡¯s new father. Hank knew full well that Liberty would not ept him anymore. As for Jessica, he still had feelings for her. He also felt sorry for her. He hurt two women because of his unfaithfulness. Liberty was already divorced from Hank and had started her life anew. She was leading a wonderful life. He did not want to hurt Jessica again, especially by divorcing her when she was in jail. If he did that, she would be homeless after she was released. Ever since Jessica was arrested, her brother and sister-inw had established boundaries with her. Although her parents took pity on her, they could not do anything about it. They were already old and reliant on their son and daughter-inw to look after them. Hank was well aware that Jessica would be left homeless if he divorced her. Chelsea told her younger brother off for being heartless toward Liberty yet loving toward Jessica. ¡°Sonny.¡± Duncan smiled while walking toward Sonny to carry him. After that, he lifted Sonny and turned around, making Sonny burst intoughter. Seeing their joyful and close interaction, the passers-by were under the impression that the two of them were father and son. After Duncan stopped lifting Sonny and spinning him, he asked Sonny with a grin, ¡°Are you happy?¡± ¡°Yeah.¡± Sonnyughed so much that his face reddened. Duncan loved his flushed face. Sonny looked so cute that Duncan could not help but kiss him on the cheek. Unexpectedly, Sonny kissed Duncan back. Duncan grinned from ear to ear. He was overjoyed at Sonny¡¯s response. He decided not to wash his face tonight. Duncan carried Sonny and walked up to Liberty. He fixed his profound gaze on Liberty and said gently,¡± Liberty, since you¡¯re shopping with Sonny, you probably need someone to carry things for you. I¡¯m very strong, and I can help you carry.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, why are you here?¡± Liberty¡¯s attitude toward Duncan did not change. She would not change her attitude just because Duncan was going after her fervently. ¡°I-I happened to pass by.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Duncan would not admit that he had gone to Liberty¡¯s ce. Coincidentally, he saw Liberty taking Sonny out with the bike, so he tailed them. Then, he pretended to run into them. Liberty would not buy that. He must havee over on purpose. However, Liberty did not expose him. She said, ¡°Sonny wanted to go to the third floor, so I took him here to y for a while. We¡¯re not buying anything, so we won¡¯t need anyone to carry things for us. Mr. Lewis, I¡¯m sure you have other things to handle. You may carry on with your work. Sonny, let¡¯s go.¡± She went out and ended up meeting her ex-husband as well as her courter. Liberty felt that it was really a small world. ¡°Dunc, do you want to y with us?¡± Liberty wanted to get rid of Duncan very badly, yet her beloved son invited him along. Duncan answered eagerly, ¡°Sure. I¡¯ve gotten off work. I have plenty of free time now, so I can y with you.¡± While speaking, he carried Sonny and said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, let¡¯s go.¡± As for Hank and Jessica, Duncan turned a blind eye to them. He was not bothered to look at them at all. He knew that Hank was ring at him ferociously. The situation exasperated Hank. Hank had only himself to me for hurting Liberty. Because of him, Liberty stopped looking forward to love and marriage, and he had not made any progress in his n to win her heart again. Chapter 1610 Chapter 1610 Chapter 1610 ¡°Sonny. ¡°Sonny.¡± Something seemed to be wrong with Hank. He kept shouting his son¡¯s name as he strode toward his son. ¡°Sonny, I¡¯ll y with you. Hank hurriedly caught up with Duncan and blocked him. He stretched out his hand to snatch Sonny over. Sonny was Hank¡¯s son! He shared the same surname as Hank, namely Brown! He had nothing to do with Duncan at all. There was no need for Duncan to y with Sonny. Sonny¡¯s biological father was here! ¡°Sonny, let Dad y with you, okay?¡± As Hank asked Sonny, his eyes were fixed on Duncan. He purposely stressed the word ¡°Dad¡±. Hank would forever be Sonny¡¯s father! If Duncan wanted to be Sonny¡¯s father, he could dream on!N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Hank failed to stop Duncan from going after his ex-wife. After all, he was still married to Jessica. What was more, Jessica was pregnant with his child, which meant he could not divorce her at this point. If Liberty wanted to remarry, she had the freedom to do so. Besides feeling annoyed, there was really nothing Hank could do. Sonny was Hank¡¯s son. When Duncan approached Sonny, Hank stopped Duncan in spite of himself to avoid Duncan and Sonny from behaving like father and son. ¡°Dad, are you not going to apany Jess to buy something?¡± Sonny pointed at Jessica. Jessica pulled a long face. Sonny thought that Jess must be mad if his father chose to y with him. After listening to Liberty¡¯s exnation, Sonny came to understand that his father would live with Jess in the future. Hank turned around and nced at Jessica before he said to Sonny, ¡°No. I¡¯ll y with you first. When you don¡¯t feel like ying anymore, I¡¯ll apany Jess to buy things. I can buy whatever you want. ¡°Sonny, you have a father. Regardless of your dad and mom¡¯s rtionship, I¡¯ll forever be your biological dad! ¡°I love you. Don¡¯t be fooled by other people. Don¡¯t simply address someone else as ¡®Dad¡¯, okay? Some people have bad intentions. They take advantage of you to achieve their goals.¡± Overly jealous, Hank reminded his son in front of Duncan and Liberty. ¡°Hank.¡± Liberty asked, ¡°Why are you saying these things to Sonny?¡± ¡°I¡¯m just telling the truth.¡± Hank shot a look at Duncan. Then, he said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, although we have an unhappy past, you¡¯re still Sonny¡¯s mom. I hope you live well. Let me remind you not to get deceived by other people.¡± ¡°Thank you for your reminder. I¡¯m clear-headed.¡± Liberty¡¯s voice was cold. She was not in love with Duncan, but she believed that he was trustworthy. ¡°Hank¡­¡± Jessica suddenly wrapped her hands around her stomach. With a sour look, she shouted to Hank, ¡°Hank, my stomach isn¡¯t feeling well. I¡¯m not sure if this is a symptom of a miscarriage.¡± Upon hearing that, Hank immediately put Sonny down. He turned around and ran back to Jessica. He held Jessica and asked anxiously, ¡°You were fine just now. Why are you suddenly feeling unwell? The fetus should be safe since you¡¯ve been pregnant for over three months.¡± ¡°It¡¯s probably because I¡¯ve been standing for too long. I just find my tummy ufortable.¡± Jessica asked, ¡°Hank, let¡¯s go home first, alright?¡± Hank held her. ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll go home first. I¡¯ll help you get the things you want another day.¡± While he was speaking, Jessica headed toward his car. Chapter 1611 Chapter 1611 Chapter 1611 Liberty watched the situation indifferently. Jessica was faking it, yet Hank could not see through it? Perhaps it was because Hank was concerned about Jessica and her baby. Soon, Hank left with Jessica by car. He did not even bid goodbye to Liberty and the rest. Liberty and Duncan wished Hank could quickly leave. However, Sonny was dejected. Hank said he would y with Sonny. However, once Jess said she was unwell, Hank instantly ignored him and left with Jess. ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny walked toward Liberty. He extended his hands to ask for a hug from Liberty. Liberty carried him. Seeing his dejected look, she fell quiet for a moment before exining on Hank¡¯s behalf. ¡°Sonny, Jess isn¡¯t feeling well, and your dad is worried about her. He had to send her to the hospital for a check-up, and that¡¯s why he can¡¯t y with you. It¡¯s not because he doesn¡¯t want to y with you or he doesn¡¯t love you.¡± Duncan¡¯s lips twitched. He felt that Hank did not love Sonny dearly. Hank loved Jessica and her baby more. That woman was obviously putting on a pretense. Hank used to be a manager at hispany. Given that he had seen all kinds of situations at the workce, could he not tell that she was faking it? After all, Hank cared more about Jessica than anything else. He had little rapport with Sonny. It was very kind of Liberty to exin on Hank¡¯s behalf. If it were another woman, she would have criticized her ex-husband numerous times. That was what Hank appreciated about Liberty. The couple had a broken rtionship and were even divorced. Even so, Liberty did not badmouth Hank in front of the child. This was because, for Sonny, Hank was his father no matter whether her parents were divorced and what Hank had done. Hank might not care much about Sonny, but he was willing to pay for child support. He was still responsible enough to fulfill his duty as a father. ¡°Is it true that Dad doesn¡¯t love me anymore?¡± Sonny asked. ¡°No. Your dad still loves you.¡± The dejected look on Sonny¡¯s face disappeared. Subsequently, he asked.in confusion, ¡°Mom, why did Dad leave once Jess said her stomach wasn¡¯t well?¡± ¡°There¡¯s a baby in Jess¡¯s stomach. She said it was ufortable. Your dad was worried that the baby was not well, so he quickly took Jess to the hospital.¡± Feeling hazy, Sonny uttered ¡°oh¡±. Duncan patted Sonny¡¯s head and said to him, ¡°Your dad is too busy to y with you, but I have plenty of free time. Let me y with you.¡± ¡°Sure!¡± Sonny instantly felt delighted again. Liberty turned her eyes to Duncan. ¡°Mr. Lewis, don¡¯t you need to attend any social function?¡± ¡°Not tonight.¡± Duncan carried Sonny and said to Liberty, ¡°Come on. Let¡¯s go in.¡± With that, he walked into the yground with Sonny in his arms before Liberty could turn him down. Liberty silently watched Duncan carry Sonny into the yground. After some time, she sighed and had no choice but to follow them in. ¡°Sonny, where should we y? I¡¯m not sure about the way. You need to guide me.¡± The two of them were chatting during their walk. Duncan purposely pretended not to know his way around the ce so that Sonny could guide him. Sonny immediately felt as though he was entrusted with an important task. He pointed to the elevator and said, ¡°Dunc, we¡¯ll go to the third floor.¡±Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Chapter 1612 Chapter 1612 Chapter 1612 ¡°It¡¯s on the third floor, huh? There¡¯s a lot of food on the first floor. Do you want to buy something to eat?¡± Sonny shook his head. Currently, he was not keen on eating or ying. With Aunt Ser around, he had all kinds of good food. Upon noticing that Sonny was not interested in buying things, Duncan took him straight to the third floor of the mall. On the third floor, the kids¡¯ yground upied one side whereas the other was a fashion store. When some parents came here to buy shoes, they would drop their children off at the yground and leave them to y there. There was an entrance fee with staff members keeping an eye on the kids. The kids would not run out unless they wanted to stop ying. Even if they wanted to run out, the staff members would not allow the kids to do so without the presence of their parents. Therefore, the parents would feel at ease. By cing their children at the yground, they could shop around the mall freely without being annoyed by their children. This had attracted many parents to spend at this mall. Liberty bought an entrance ticket for her son. She asked Sonny to take off his shoes and enter the yground on his own. Duncan asked concernedly, ¡°Will Sonny be bullied by other people? There are a lot of kids here.¡± ¡°Usually, I¡¯ll be around to make sure Sonny won¡¯t be bullied. The workers are here to keep an eye too.¡± Duncan got it. He fixed his eyes on Sonny¡¯s back. As soon as Sonny entered the yground, he started ying with other kids. He looked cute and was honey-tongued. He addressed other kids politely, which resulted in many kids turning into his ymates. Duncan felt relieved only after watching him for a while. It seemed that Sonny had great social skills. ¡°Liberty, do you want to do some shopping?¡± Duncan asked Liberty, who was beside him. Liberty shook her head. ¡°There¡¯s nothing I want to buy.¡± Since she had nothing to buy, she did not want to shop around. Shopping was tiring, so she might as well sit here and watch her son y. ¡°You can buy new toys, clothes, and shoes for Sonny. You can buy some new clothes for yourself as well.¡± Duncan tried hard to persuade Liberty into buying things. This would give him the chance to pay. Liberty could not help butugh. She said, ¡°Sonny and I aren¡¯t short of those things. Sonny, in particr, has everything. Seren and Elisa keep buying him clothes, and he hasn¡¯t gotten to try on many of them.¡±N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. The same went for toys. Elisa enjoyed taking Sonny out shopping. Her spending power was astonishing. Every time she took Sonny out, she woulde home with her car full of new things. Liberty had told her cousin numerous times not to buy abundant things for Sonny. There was insufficient space to ce those things in the house. However, Elisa said proudly, ¡°If there¡¯s not enough space, get a bigger house. Since you¡¯re capable of buying a house on your own now, you should buy a big house as well as several wardrobes. Then, you¡¯ll have enough space, won¡¯t you?¡± Liberty was left speechless. She remained indecisive and reflected on Elisa¡¯s words. ¡®Sonny is your one and only son. Who should you love if not Sonny?¡¯ Ring, ring¡­ Liberty¡¯s phone rang. It was an unknown number. Liberty picked up the call. ¡°Is this Liberty?¡± The moment she answered the call, a rather familiar voice rang out from the other end of the line. She could tell that it was Mrs. Lewis¡¯s voice. ¡°Yes, Mrs. Lewis. I am.¡± Mrs. Lewis asked in a gentle tone, ¡°Liberty, are you staying in Glenn Apartment?¡± ¡°Yes. What¡¯s wrong?¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s question left Liberty feeling slightly dazed Mrs. Lewisughed and said, ¡°Nothing much. I was bored at home, so I drove around and happened to be around your ce. I want to visit Sonny and you. Is now a good time?¡± Chapter 1613 Chapter 1613 Chapter 1613 Liberty did not believe that Mrs. Lewis would randomly pass by somewhere near her rented house. Surely, Mrs. Lewis came to meet her on purpose. She took a glimpse of her son who was having fun. Then, she turned her eyes to Duncan and said, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯m outside now. It¡¯ll take time for me to return.¡± ¡°Oh, you¡¯re out? Are you alone?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked patiently. She did not know Liberty¡¯s number. Mr. and Mrs. Lewis deliberately went to All You Can Eat and jotted down Liberty¡¯s number from the signboard. ¡°I¡¯m on the third floor of Gloria Mall with my son. There¡¯s an indoor yground, and Sonny enjoys ying here. We bumped into Mr. Lewis at the entrance of the mall, so he¡¯s here as well.¡± When Mrs. Lewis heard that her son pretended to create the encounter to be involved with Liberty, her face turned grim. However, she was not angry at Liberty. After suppressing her anger, she said to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, since Duncan is there, you can have him look after Sonny. We¡¯ll¡­ find a ce to have a talk.¡± She finally admitted that her visit was intentional. Liberty did not reject Mrs. Lewis. After ending the call, Liberty said to Duncan, ¡°Mr. Lewis, I have something to attend to, so I need to take my leave first. Please help me look after Sonny.¡± Duncan was already aware that it was a call from his mother. The meeting was definitely not going to be pleasant. ¡°Liberty, let me apany you to meet my mom.¡± ¡°What about Sonny? He just entered the yground and hasn¡¯t had enough fun. Hank wanted to y with him earlier, but ended up ignoring him and left. He¡¯s upset. If we take him away while he¡¯s enjoying himself, he¡¯ll be upset the entire night.¡± Liberty could roughly guess why Mrs. Lewis wanted to have a talk with her. Since Duncan wanted to tag along, she had no choice but to use her son as an excuse. At that moment, Duncan was torn. ¡°Mr. Lewis, please do me this favor. I¡¯ll be back very shortly.¡± Liberty left with her key to the e-bike before Duncan could turn her down. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Liberty.¡± Duncan promptly called to stop her and went after her. He said to her, ¡°I have no idea why my mom is looking for you. No matter what my mom is going to tell you, that doesn¡¯t represent my thoughts. Don¡¯t take it to heart.¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°Mrs. Lewis probably asked me out just to have a meal.¡± Of course, she knew Mrs. Lewis¡¯s intention was to have a talk with her. This made her realize that Mrs. Lewis was unable to ept her. Coincidentally, she wanted Mrs. Lewis to advise Duncan not to pursue her passionately. She was now at peace with herself and had no interest in rtionships. Helpless, Duncan watched Liberty leave. He had to apany Sonny. After Liberty walked away, he instantly phoned his mother. Mrs. Lewis felt a little guilty, but she still answered her son¡¯s call. ¡°Mom, why are you meeting Liberty?¡± ¡°Nothing much. I passed by Liberty¡¯s ce and suddenly felt like meeting her, so I asked her out for a meal. Why are you nervous? Are you worried that I¡¯ll eat Liberty up?¡± Duncan did not believe what his mother said at all. He said solemnly, ¡°Mom, don¡¯t talk nonsense in front of Liberty. I put a lot of effort into pursuing her. It¡¯s okay if you don¡¯t want to help me, but don¡¯t hold me back.¡± Now, he always had to use Sonny as an excuse to stay by Liberty¡¯s side and talk to her. Liberty used to treat him quite nicely before he confessed his love to her. Ever since Liberty learned that Duncan liked her, her treatment toward him might appear the same, but he could sense that she was actually much more indifferent. Chapter 1614 Chapter 1614 Chapter 1614 Liberty wished she could keep a distance from Duncan all the time. Nevertheless, he always used Sonny as an excuse, which left her feeling helpless. ¡°You deserve it. It serves you right. You rejected Lily who¡¯s interested in you and wants to get into a rtionship with you, but you like Liberty instead. You know full well that Liberty has no feelings for you, yet you shamelessly pester her in spite of your status.¡¯ Mrs. Lewis did not take pity on his son for going through a hard time pursuing Liberty. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. She even hoped that Liberty would persist in treating her son the same way so he would eventually give 1. ¡°Mom, I have no feelings for Ms. Harmon. I simply like Liberty.¡± ¡°Tell me in what way Liberty is better than Lily,¡± Mrs. Lewis asked her son huffily. The kid really made Mrs. Lewis¡¯s blood boil. ¡°Ms. Harmon and Liberty have their own qualities; everyone¡¯s positive traits differ.¡± Duncan was not averse to Lily, but he knew that she was not his cup of tea. Lily was a career woman through and through. He felt that he would not feel happy if he got together with Lily. Even though Liberty was said to be doing well in her career, she might one day be a career woman too. Nevertheless, he felt a sense of achievement watching and apanying Liberty in her growth. Additionally, Liberty¡¯s temperament was different from Lily¡¯s. He simply liked how Liberty was. There was no need for a reason. There was no need to identify a particr trait of Liberty that was better than Lily. ¡°If I were to provide an exnation, I would just be honest. Firstly, I love Sonny and want to be his dad. I don¡¯t even mind being his stepdad. This is something Ms. Harmon can¡¯tpare with Liberty.¡± His words made Mrs. Lewis¡¯s face turn red. ¡°Duncan, you b*stard. Are you trying to piss me off?¡± Lily was unmarried and childless yet. How could she get a child topare with Sonny? Mrs. Lewis was furious with her son. Duncan was not angry at being told off. ¡°You asked me to tell the difference, and that was my honest thought. The primary reason is that I¡¯m very fond of Sonny.¡± Later, as he interacted with Liberty more often, he wanted to make her and Sonny ept him little by little. How wonderful it was to form a family of three. ¡°I¡¯ve never seen people like you who can¡¯t wait to be someone¡¯s stepdad!¡± Mrs. Lewis further criticized her son. Unbothered to speak more to her son, she quickly hung up the call. She was worried that she might strangle her son if she continued talking to him. ¡°That b*stard really pissed me off. What an unfilial son. He actually can¡¯t wait to be someone¡¯s stepdad even though that kid doesn¡¯t belong to him. Doesn¡¯t Sonny have a father? His biological father is still. alive.¡± After hanging up, Mrs. Lewisined about her unfilial son to her husband. She even felt that it was right to have a heart-to-heart talk with Liberty. Duncan would not listen to her advice. Every time she tried to talk to her son about Liberty, the two of them would have a falling out, which affected their rtionship. It would be much easier to deal with Liberty. What was more, Liberty was not interested in Duncan. She probably wanted to get rid of him very badly. Anyway, Duncan was excellent, yet Liberty had no interest in him! Liberty¡¯s standards were really high. Mrs. Lewis was filled with mixed feelings. If Liberty fell in love with Duncan, Mrs. Lewis would find fault with her. Now that Liberty had no feelings for Duncan and was unwilling to ept his love, Mrs. Lewis felt that Liberty¡¯s standards were too high. Duncan was an outstanding wealthy man, yet a divorced woman like Liberty was not interested in him! Chapter 1615 Chapter 1615 Chapter 1615 By the time Liberty arrived at the destination set by Mrs. Lewis, Mrs. Lewis was already waiting for her. She parked her e-bike and removed the helmet. She walked up to Mrs. Lewis and greeted her politely, ¡°Hi, Mrs. Lewis.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Although Mrs. Lewis had a row with her son and was furious at him, she remained well-mannered in front of Liberty and gently acknowledged her greeting. ¡°Let¡¯s go in and take a seat.¡± Mrs. Lewis invited Liberty in. Liberty nodded and followed behind Mrs. Lewis. Mr. Lewis did not tag along. His wife ordered him to stay in the car, and he was not allowed to leave. Mrs. Lewis found a table in a corner to sit at, which was away from other customers. It was also quiet enough for her to speak to Liberty. She did not have to worry about other people overhearing their conversation. Once Liberty was seated, Mrs. Lewis hailed a waiter over to order a ss of fruit juice for herself. Since it was nighttime, she did not want to drink coffee. ¡°Liberty, what would you like to drink?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked. Liberty responded, ¡°I¡¯d like a ss of warm water.¡± For a long time, Liberty had refrained from eating after six in the evening to lose weight. Although she had sessfully shed pounds, she had be used to not eating past that hour. She did not want to change her habit in case she gained weight again. Mrs. Lewis said to the waiter, ¡°And a ss of warm water, please.¡± ¡± After the waiter left, she said with a smile, ¡°Are you trying to save money for me? I¡¯m treating you to a meal, yet you just want warm water.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I drank warm water at night to lose weight back then. I would only drink when I was really thirsty. I dared not drink anything else because I was worried I couldn¡¯t lose weight. Now that I¡¯ve finally lost weight, I need to control my diet so I won¡¯t revert to my previous figure.¡± She had spent half a year losing weight. It was no easy task. Weight loss required perseverance. Mrs. Lewis observed Liberty and praised her, ¡°You can even be featured on weight loss advertisements. You¡¯re totally different from when I first met you.¡± -When she first met Liberty, Liberty was still a fatso. Libertyughed and said, ¡°At that time, I was really fat, I have no idea how I got that fat.¡± At the thought of her failed marriage with Hank, she felt that she was at fault. Her biggest mistake was that she did not love herself. She thought her life would be stable after she got married and gave birth to a son. She was not bothered to maintain a good figure. She did not control her diet and ate everything inrge amounts. In the end, her weight rose sharply. Her husband eventually looked down on her, which led to her broken marriage. Women must love themselves. Mrs. Lewis grinned without replying. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, you asked me out because you have something to discuss with me, right?¡± After chatting for a while, Liberty asked Mrs. Lewis directly. Sonny was still left in the mall. Even though Duncan was looking after him, Liberty was uneasy about it. She wanted to quickly wrap up the discussion and get things settled. Just as Mrs. Lewis was thinking about how to start the discussion without being abrupt, she did not. expect Liberty to ask her forthrightly. She said, ¡°Liberty, I¡¯d like to have a talk with you. It¡¯s just a talk. I¡¯m not going to force you.¡± Chapter 1616 Chapter 1616 Chapter 1616 This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Go ahead, Mrs. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lewis looked at the beautiful appearance of Liberty who had sessfully lost weight, then she praised her by saying, ¡°Liberty, you bear a passing resemnce to Mrs. Stone when she was younger. She was a beautiful career woman back then. Many elders wanted her to be their daughter-inw. ¡°In the end, Mr. Stone captured her heart, and she became Mrs. Stone. Now Stones.¡± she is the mainstay of the Old Mrs. Stone initially disapproved of her son and Audrey¡¯s marriage. However, she could not take control of it. Her husband and son were fond of Audrey, so Old Mrs. Stone had no choice but to ept Audrey. Anyway, the rtionship between Old Mrs. Stone and Mrs. Stone was not the most pleasant. When Stone Group got into trouble, Mrs. Stone was the one who went all out to save thepany from crisis. It was only then that Old Mrs. Stone epted Mrs. Stone wholeheartedly. Elisa mentioned that when her mother just married into the Stone family, her grandmother made things difficult for her mother. Liberty smiled before she said, ¡°Considering that Aunt Audrey and my mom are biological sisters, it¡¯s unsurprising that they both look simr. I look like my mom, so I bear a passing resemnce to Aunt Audrey as well.¡± At the mention of her mother, Mrs. Lewis recalled that Liberty¡¯s parents had both passed away. Liberty also had many outrageous rtives in her hometown who were orphans. ¡°Liberty, do you like Duncan now?¡± All of a sudden, Mrs. Lewis asked. Liberty had long guessed Mrs. Lewis¡¯s intention of asking her out. Without the slightest hesitation, she answered frankly, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯ve always treated Mr. Lewis as my landlord and friend. I have no interest in him. I don¡¯t hate him, but that doesn¡¯t mean I love him.¡± Mrs. Lewis stared intently at Liberty. Having been in a wealthy family for decades, Mrs. Lewis was a good judge of character. She could tell that Liberty was telling the truth. Liberty¡¯s gaze was pure. If she were lying, she would not have met Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes openly. Liberty was not so crafty yet, was she? ¡°I trust you, Liberty.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s voice became gentle. ¡°But Duncan likes you. He¡¯s stubborn. No matter how I advise him, he won¡¯t listen to me and continue to like you.¡± Obviously, Mrs. Lewis was trying to tell Liberty that she would not ept Liberty as her daughter-in- law. After a moment of silence, Liberty replied, ¡°Mrs. Lewis, when Mr. Lewis confessed his love to me, I rejected him. He¡¯s still pursuing me, but I¡¯m not epting him. His love for me isn¡¯t something that I can control.¡± Indeed, there was nothing she could do about it. She was not interested in Duncan. It was Duncan¡¯s business to fall in love with her. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, you can try to talk to Mr. Lewis about it. I¡¯m grateful for his feelings for me, but I don¡¯t n to remarry. Whenever I think of my broken marriage, I¡¯ll shake with fear. Now that I¡¯ve finally gotten over it and my life is back on track, I don¡¯t want to be trapped in the tomb of love again.¡± Some people analogized marriage to the tomb of love with women buried inside. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, you can arrange for Mr. Lewis to meet and interact with other rich youngdies. As Mr. Lewis interacted with more women, he¡¯ll realize that there are a lot moredies out there who are better than me and suit him more.¡± Those from the same circle as Mr. Lewis would match him well. Mrs. Lewis sighed. ¡°Liberty, to be frank, I¡¯ve started to worry about Duncan since he turned thirty. I arranged many blind dates for him in a year, but he didn¡¯t want to meet any of the girls. He¡¯s independent and obstinate. I really can¡¯t do anything about it. ¡°Lily is my best friend¡¯s daughter. Although she¡¯s not from Wiltspoon, the Harmons are considered wealthy. Lily might be slightly younger than Duncan, but they¡¯re well-matched. Also, both our families nned to be rted by marriage. ¡°As you can see, it turned out that Lily had let go of Duncan.¡± While speaking, Mrs. Lewis kept moaning and sighing. She desperately wanted to make Lily her daughter-inw. Chapter 1617 Chapter 1617 Chapter 1617 Lily let go of Duncan because she knew that Duncan liked Liberty. Apparently, she did not even try to hold onto Duncan before letting go of him. Duncan had a unique taste. Since Lily could not satisfy Duncan, she might as well give up so that Duncan would not hate her. At least the two of them could still be business partners. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯ve helped you advise Mr. Lewis before. I told him that Ms. Harmon is nice. I noticed that he gets along quite well with her too.¡± Liberty did advise Duncan. Nevertheless, the attempt proved futile. As Mrs. Lewis mentioned, Duncan was an independent and obstinate person. It was almost impossible to change his decision unless he was willing to give up or make changes himself. ¡°Liberty, I won¡¯t me this matter on you. The problem lies with Duncan, not you.¡± If Liberty had pestered Duncan, Mrs. Lewis would have forcefully driven her away despite the powerful forces backing Liberty. However, Liberty was not interested in Duncan. There was actually nothing Mrs. Lewis could do to Liberty. ¡°But Liberty, I need a favor from you.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis, what favor is that?¡± Now that they had brought up this topic, Mrs. Lewis decided not to beat around the bush. She said directly, ¡°Can you stop renting the unit on that street and relocate your business? It¡¯s best that your shop is far away from Lewis & Co. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯llpensate you for all the losses resulting from your relocation. ¡°As long as the new shop you rent is far away from Lewis & Co., I¡¯ll cover all your renovation expenses. You don¡¯t need to pay a single cent.¡± When Liberty learned that Duncan liked her, she thought about canceling her tenancy agreement and moving out. Nevertheless, she decided to face it calmly in the end. Duncan was pursuing her. If she canceled her tenancy agreement and moved out, would Duncan stop pursuing her? If so, she would have moved out straight away. Moreover, she finally had many regr customers in that area, and her business was brisk. This was her first time starting a business. She had put a lot of effort into it. Honestly speaking, she could not bear to give up on it. ¡°Of course, as long as you¡¯re willing to leave Wiltspoon, I can give you morepensation. I¡¯ll guarantee that you gain a foothold in another city. You won¡¯t suffer any losses.¡± The main pointy in Mrs. Lewis¡¯sst few sentences. Her real intention was to have Liberty leave Wiltspoon and live in a ce where Duncan would not be able to find her. Liberty could see Mrs. Lewis¡¯s motive. Telling Liberty to cancel her tenancy agreement, move out, and relocate her food business was a prelude to Mrs. Lewis¡¯s n to make her leave Wiltspoon. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯m used to living in Wiltspoon. My rtives and friends are here as well. I really can¡¯t leave Wiltspoon with Sonny and live somewhere Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t aware of.¡± Mrs. Lewis felt a little awkward, but she was seething with anger. For someone who had been domineering in the family, Mrs. Lewis felt aggrieved in hermunication with Liberty at this moment. If it had been someone else, she would have tossed a check and driven that person away to settle the issue. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. She would not care who was at fault. She would not allow anyone she disliked to appear in front of her son. Unfortunately, her unfilial son, Duncan, liked Liberty. Liberty had the Stones and the Yorks backing her, which exined why Mrs. Lewis felt aggrieved and could not intimidate Liberty. ¡°I can consider canceling my tenancy agreement, moving out of that street, renting a new ce on another street, renovating my shop, and starting everything anew. Having said that, do you think this will work, Mrs. Lewis?¡± Liberty asked. When Duncan was a teenager, he stayed in other parts of Wiltspoon. Which corner of the city was he unaware of? Chapter 1618 Chapter 1618 Chapter 1618 Liberty might be able to run away, but she could not hide. This would not solve the root problem. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, the best solution is that you talk Mr. Lewis out of it. I hope you can try harder in persuading him.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. Upon hearing Liberty¡¯s words, Mrs. Lewis felt a slight burning sensation on her face. Mrs. Lewis wanted Liberty to stay away from Duncan, yet Liberty expected Mrs. Lewis to stop Duncan from pestering her. After a while, Mrs. Lewis said to Liberty in a pleading tone, ¡± Liberty, if I had a solution, I wouldn¡¯t have come to meet you. My unfilial son just won¡¯t listen to me, so I had no choice but to ask you for help. ¡°Liberty, I don¡¯t mean to look down on you. In a marriage, families have to be well¨Cmatched in social status. I¡¯m sure you understand this. Now, you¡¯re leading a peaceful life and not nning to remarry. Even if you consider remarrying, you¡¯re not going to feel happy in a rtionship with Duncan. ¡°Both of you have different social ranks and circles. When you¡¯re in the first flush of love, you might think you can ovee everything. Once the honeymoon phase is over, conflicts between the two of you will arise. ¡°Besides, I can¡¯t ept you as my daughter¨Cinw. If you really get together with Duncan, I¡¯m not sure what I¡¯ll do to you. I really can¡¯t guarantee that.¡± After Mrs. Lewis finished speaking, Liberty said, ¡°I got it.¡± ¡°Well, can you sympathize with me for simply wanting the best. for my son? As long as you leave Wiltspoon, I can pay you however much you want aspensation. Name your price and I¡¯ll fulfill your request. ¡°You can remain in touch with your sister and aunt. Just ask them not to reveal your whereabouts so that Duncan can¡¯t find you.¡± Mrs. Lewis held Liberty¡¯s hand and begged her. ¡°Liberty, I hope you sympathize with me. I¡¯ll settle all other matters as long as you promise to leave.¡± Liberty withdrew her hand gently ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯m sorry but I can¡¯t promise you I¡¯ll leave Wiltspoon. I¡¯m not at fault, so why should I make the sacrifice? Mrs. Lewis, you can move out of Wiltspoon with Mr. Lewis to stay away from me instead.¡± Mrs. Lewis choked. Then she said, ¡°I¡¯m a Wiltspoonian. I grew up here and got married here as well. Almost all my rtives and friends are in Wiltspoon. I¡¯m used to the lifestyle here. If I were to live in another ce, I won¡¯t be able to adapt to it. Even if I can adapt to it, I¡¯ll think of Wiltspoon all the time. ¡°Same here.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Liberty¡¯s reply made Mrs. Lewis choke again. Although the Hunts¡® house was in the countryside, it was still under Wiltspoon. So, when Liberty said she was a Wiltspoonian, Mrs. Lewis could not refute it. ¡°Liberty.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s voice was a little harsh. ¡°Are you reluctant to leave Wiltspoon because you¡¯re thinking about epting Duncan in the future?¡± 1 At this point, Liberty was not in love with What about the future? uncan. Mrs. Lewis could not help but suspect that Liberty might fall in love with Duncanter on. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I admit that Mr. Lewis is a great man. I can¡¯t guarantee the future. I might ept himter or never at all. Anyway, one thing I can be sure of is that I¡¯ll never marry into your family if you disapprove!¡± This meant that Liberty redirected the issue at Mrs. Lewis again. Mrs. Lewis was at a loss for words. Anyhow, Liberty would not reach apromise with Mrs. Lewis. Chapter 1619 Chapter 1619 Chapter 1619 ¡°Mrs. Lewis, is there anything else? If not, I¡¯ll take my leave. Sonny is still in the mall. I need to pick him up.¡± Deep down, Liberty was slightly bitter about it. She had never thought of being in a rtionship with Duncan. However, in the face of Mrs. Lewis¡¯s request, it was only natural to feel bitter. All Liberty did was rent Duncan¡¯s store. Besides Duncan being good friends with Zachary, Duncan had helped her a lot, which was why she treated him enthusiastically. Even so, she had never thought of being with Duncan, yet she waspelled to leave. She did not do anything wrong, so why must she leave? ¡°You may take your leave. Be careful while riding on the road since there¡¯s heavy traffic,¡± Mrs. Lewis said with fake gentleness. Liberty took the key to her e¨Cbike before she bade Mrs. Lewis goodbye. Then, she rose to her feet and left. Soon after Liberty left, Derek came in. Seeing his wife seated in a corner, he walked toward her. ¡°How was the talk? It ended so quickly?¡± Derek saw Liberty leave with a calm expression, which he could not decipher. He had no idea how the discussion went between the two women. ¡°I told her what I came here to tell her, and our talk ended just like that. It didn¡¯t work out. She¡¯s as stubborn as your son. She doesn¡¯t think it¡¯s her problem¡­¡± After falling quiet for a moment, she added, ¡°Though it¡¯s true that it¡¯s not her problem.¡± She let out a long sigh before she told her husband about the conversation between Liberty and her. Atst, she said, ¡°Liberty said she can guarantee that she won¡¯t marry into our family if I disagree. ¡°Darling, do you think Liberty is cunning? Since she won¡¯t marry into our family if I disagree, Duncan is going to be at odds with me. This will affect my rtionship with Duncan.¡± ¡°You disapprove of their rtionship anyway. Duncan and you are always in conflict. It¡¯s not Liberty¡¯s fault.¡± Mrs. Lewis gasped. Indeed, she had never approved of Duncan and Liberty¡¯s rtionship. However, after Liberty made the promise, Mrs. Lewis felt that she had been schemed against. It would be untrue to say that Liberty schemed against Mrs. Lewis, though. It just did not feel right to Mrs. Lewis. ¡°Darling, why don¡¯t we do something to our son? Let¡¯s see if we can relocate the main business of Lewis & Co. to another city.¡± Derek said, ¡°Are you under the impression that Duncan has only started hispany? Lewis & Co. has made it to one of the top five corporations. His worth is currently tens of billions of dors. A few yearster, it might exceed our family¡¯s wealth. ¡°What¡¯s more, Lewis & Co. and York Corporation have been working closely. Do you think you can deal with Lewis & Co.? Duncan and Josh are good friends. You¡¯re well aware of the Buchams¡® background, aren¡¯t you? If Duncan finds out that we hatch a devious plot against him in order to stop him from going after Liberty, what will the consequence be? Have you thought of all these? ¡°He might turn against me. Duncan might seem rough, burly, and casual, but he¡¯s actually the kind who holds grudges.¡± ¡°Since all these methods won¡¯t work, am I going to watch. Duncan go after Liberty and let her marry into our family eventually?¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Derek said, ¡°Liberty has promised you, hasn¡¯t she? As long as you disagree, she definitely won¡¯t marry into our family. You should be cruel and leave your son to be single.¡± Mrs. Lewis was speechless. She could not bring herself to allow her son to go after Liberty. However, she could not bring herself to be cruel and disapprove of her son¡¯s rtionship with Liberty forever. Parents would always be the one who relent first while in a conflict with their children. ¡°I¡¯ve told you earlier that it¡¯s no use meeting Liberty. The problem lies with your son. Even if you approve of Duncan to be with Liberty, Liberty won¡¯t be with him since she doesn¡¯t love him. ¡°Liberty isn¡¯t even interested in your son!¡± Chapter 1620 Chapter 1620 Chapter 1620 Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°I wonder what¡¯s wrong with Liberty¡¯s taste. My son is outstanding, yet she¡¯s not interested in him. What kind of man does she want to marry?¡± ¡°Is it a must for divorced women to remarry? I guess Liberty is frustrated. It¡¯s not easy for her to ept a new rtionship. If Duncan doesn¡¯t give up, he might spend several years trying to move Liberty. Perhaps you won¡¯t be stopping them from getting together. Instead, you might be the one begging Liberty to be with Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s face darkened. ¡°It¡¯s impossible for me to beg Liberty to be with Duncan unless pigs can fly.¡± Derek was teasing her inwardly, ¡®Don¡¯t jinx it. It might be a p to your face. You might beg Liberty to marry your son in the future, and pigs can actually fly.¡¯ Duncan, who was keeping an eye on Sonny in the mall, was absent¨Cminded. He wanted to meet his mother and Liberty very badly. He wanted to hear about the conversation between the two of them. Would Liberty be more reluctant to ept his love? However, he could not leave. He had to keep an eye on Sonny. Liberty had Duncan look after Sonny. If anything happened to Sonny, Duncan would feel sorry for Liberty. With his hands shoved in the pockets of his pants, he paced back and forth at the entrance of the yground, but Liberty was nowhere in sight. ¡°Dunc, Dunc.¡± Sonny was tired, and he wanted to go home. He wanted to leave, but a staff member forbade him froming out alone. She said to Sonny, ¡°See whether your parents are around. If they¡¯re not, you can continue ying. You can Sonny did not see his mother, but he caught sight of Duncan. He shouted Duncan¡¯s name. Duncan was not paying attention to Sonny. Also, due to the noise in the yground, he did not hear Sonny¡¯s voice. The attendant walked up to Duncan and patted his shoulder. Just as Duncan turned around and looked at her, she asked, ¡°Sir, are you the parent of that kid? He doesn¡¯t want to y anymore. He wants to leave.¡± The minute Duncan saw Sonny, he quickly replied, ¡°Yes. I¡¯m his uncle.¡± While speaking, he strode toward Sonny. ¡°Dunc.¡± Sonny pointed at Duncan and said to the attendant, ¡°Miss, he¡¯s Dunc. He¡¯s very close to my uncle. Can he take me away?¡± Duncan learned about the rule of the yground from Liberty. He added, ¡°I came with his mom just now. His mom went to buy something, so I was stationed here to look after him.¡± The attendant mainly wanted to confirm that Sonny knew Duncan. Given that Sonny seemed close to Duncan, she let Sonny out. Duncan took Sonny¡¯s shoes over and bent down. He carried Sonny and put him on hisp before helping him to put on his shoes. Then, he put Sonny down and held his hand to leave. ¡°Dunc, my mom paid. Now that I¡¯m done ying, I can get the money back.¡± Sonny was referring to the deposit. Duncan took Sonny to retrieve the deposit. After that, he carried Sonny and headed outside. ¡°Dunc, where¡¯s my mom?¡± Sonny asked. Chapter 1620 Mrs. Lewis said, ¡°I wonder what¡¯s wrong with Liberty¡¯s taste. My son is outstanding, yet she¡¯s not interested in him. What kind of man does she want to marry?¡± ¡°Is it a must for divorced women to remarry? I guess Liberty is frustrated. It¡¯s not easy for her to ept a new rtionship. If Duncan doesn¡¯t give up, he might spend several years trying to move Liberty. Perhaps you won¡¯t be stopping them from getting together. Instead, you might be the one begging Liberty to be with Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s face darkened. ¡°It¡¯s impossible for me to beg Liberty to be with Duncan unless pigs can fly.¡± Derek was teasing her inwardly, ¡®Don¡¯t jinx it. It might be a p to your face. You might beg Liberty to marry your son in the future, and pigs can actually fly.¡¯ Duncan, who was keeping an eye on Sonny in the mall, was absent¨Cminded. He wanted to meet his mother and Liberty very badly. He wanted to hear about the conversation between the two of them. Would Liberty be more reluctant to ept his love? However, he could not leave. He had to keep an eye on Sonny. Liberty had Duncan look after Sonny. If anything happened to Sonny, Duncan would feel sorry for Liberty. With his hands shoved in the pockets of his pants, he paced back and forth at the entrance of the yground, but Liberty was nowhere in sight. ¡°Dunc, Dunc.¡± Sonny was tired, and he wanted to go home. He wanted to leave, but a staff member forbade him froming out alone. She said to Sonny, ¡°See whether your parents are around. If they¡¯re not, you can continue ying. You can Sonny did not see his mother, but he caught sight of Duncan. He shouted Duncan¡¯s name. Duncan was not paying attention to Sonny. Also, due to the noise in the yground, he did not hear Sonny¡¯s voice. The attendant walked up to Duncan and patted his shoulder. Just as Duncan turned around and looked at her, she asked, ¡°Sir, are you the parent of that kid? He doesn¡¯t want to y anymore. He wants to leave.¡± The minute Duncan saw Sonny, he quickly replied, ¡°Yes. I¡¯m his uncle.¡± While speaking, he strode toward Sonny. ¡°Dunc.¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Sonny pointed at Duncan and said to the attendant, ¡°Miss, he¡¯s Dunc. He¡¯s very close to my uncle. Can he take me away?¡± Duncan learned about the rule of the yground from Liberty. He added, ¡°I came with his mom just now. His mom went to buy something, so I was stationed here to look after him.¡± The attendant mainly wanted to confirm that Sonny knew Duncan. Given that Sonny seemed close to Duncan, she let Sonny out. Duncan took Sonny¡¯s shoes over and bent down. He carried Sonny and put him on hisp before helping him to put on his shoes. Then, he put Sonny down and held his hand to leave. ¡°Dunc, my mom paid. Now that I¡¯m done ying, I can get the money back.¡± Sonny was referring to the deposit. Duncan took Sonny to retrieve the deposit. After that, he carried Sonny and headed outside. ¡°Dunc, where¡¯s my mom?¡± Sonny asked. Chapter 1621 Chapter 1621 Chapter 1621 ¡°Your mom has something to deal with. She¡¯ll be back soon,¡± Duncan lied. ¡°We¡¯ll wait outside for your mom toe back.¡± Sonny acknowledged it. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. After carrying Sonny to the first floor, Duncan asked him, ¡°Sonny, is there any snack you want to eat? I¡¯ll buy it for you.¡± ¡°Thanks, Dunc. But there are a lot of snacks at Aunt Ser¡¯s house. I don¡¯t need it.¡± Nowadays, Sonny stayed the nights at Aunt Ser¡¯s house. Jim would send Sonny to ss in the morning. It was only when Sonny did not need to go to ss that he would stay with his mother Aunt Ser and Uncle Zak loved him dearly. They always bought him a lot of tasty snacks. ¡°That¡¯s Aunt Ser¡¯s business. I simply want to buy it for you to express my kindness. Sonny, give me a chance to do this.¡± Sonny stared at Duncan. He did not quite catch Duncan¡¯s meaning. Duncan did not exin further but asked Sonny, ¡°Sonny, have you thought of allowing me to be your father?¡± ¡°I have a father.¡± Duncan choked before he replied, ¡°I know you have a father. Everyone has one, but there are some exceptions. Some people have two fathers. Do you want to have two fathers? I¡¯ll be your father, okay?¡± Sonny shook his head. ¡°Dunc, you¡¯re an uncle to me. My father is my father. How can you be my father?¡± He continued, ¡°Having one father is enough. I don¡¯t want two fathers. My mom has always taught me not to be greedy. We should let others have it. Dunc, why don¡¯t you be someone else¡¯s father?¡± Duncan was at a loss for words. Sonny was clever, but unfortunately, he was too young to understand what Duncan meant. ¡°Sonny, what I mean is I love your mom and want to marry her. Then, we can form a new family of three. You can call me ¡®Dad¡®.¡± ¡°But I have a father. You want to marry my mom as your wife?¡± Duncanughed and replied, ¡°Yes. Do you agree?¡± ¡°My mom wants to be with me!¡± Sonny promptly expressed that his mother belonged to him! ¡°You¡¯re definitely with your mom. I¡¯m the one who wants to join your family. Would you agree, Sonny?¡± Sonny looked at Durican without uttering a word. Duncan asked patiently, ¡°Sonny, do you like me?¡± ¡°I like you, but I already have a father.¡± Duncan responded, ¡°But your dad and mom are divorced.¡± ¡°Mom said that Dad is still my dad even after she divorced him.¡± Duncan was speechless. ¡°Mom. Mom is here.¡± While being carried by Duncan, Sonny saw his mother from afar. He immediately said to Duncan joyfully, ¡°Dunc, my mom is here to pick me up. I¡¯ll ask my momter whether she agrees for you to join our family. I¡¯ll agree if she does.¡± In actuality, Sonny still could not grasp Dunc¡¯s message. Nevertheless, Duncan was aware that he was a kid who could be easily deceived, so it was better to have his mother make decisions. Given that his mother was an adult, she would not be fooled easily. As long as his mother agreed, he would be fine with it. Indeed, he enjoyed ying with Dunc very much now. However, Sonny did not n to treat Dunc as his father. He did not want to be greedy since he already had a father. He should leave Dunc to be another kid¡¯s father. Duncan stopped in his tracks and turned his eyes to where Sonny was pointing at. Sure enough, he saw Liberty walking into the mall. ¡°Sonny.¡± Feeling rather guilty, Duncan quickly reminded Sonny by saying, ¡°Sonny, don¡¯t tell your mom what we just talked about, okay?¡± ¡°Why?¡± ¡°This is our little secret. Only both of us can know about it. Don¡¯t tell others, not even your mom.¡± Sonny said, ¡°But Mom isn¡¯t someone else. She¡¯s my mom.¡± Duncan choked. He patiently exined to Sonny several times, yet Sonny was still hazy about it. Sonny asked Duncan, ¡°Dunc, are you too scared to ask my mom? Don¡¯t be scared. I can help you ask Mom if she¡¯s okay with it.¡± Chapter 1622 Chapter 1622 Chapter 1622 Duncan had no idea what to say. Sonny was such a stubborn kid. ¡°Sonny,¡± Having caught sight of Duncan and Sonny, Liberty walked toward them. Still worried, Duncan reminded Sonny once again not to expose their discussion earlier. Sonny seemed to turn a deaf ear to his words and struggled out of his arms. He slid down and ran toward his mother. ¡°Mom.¡± Once Sonny ran toward Liberty, she held his hand and asked with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t want to y any longer?¡± ¡°No. I want to go home.¡± ¡°Alright. Let¡¯s go home.¡± Looking at Duncan in front of her, Liberty expressed her gratitude to Duncan calmly. ¡°Mr. Lewis, thank you for looking after Sonny on my behalf.¡± ¡°You¡¯re wee. I¡¯m more than ready to help you look after him.¡± Duncan stretched out his hand to touch the top of Sonny¡¯s head. ¡°Sonny is easy to handle.¡± Liberty grinned before she said to Duncan, ¡°Mr. Lewis, we¡¯ll leave first since Sonny wants to go home now.¡± Duncan instantly replied, ¡°Let me send you home.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine.¡± Liberty carried her son and asked him to bid Duncan goodbye. ¡°Liberty,¡± Duncan wanted to know what Liberty and his mother had talked about.. Liberty just turned around and shed a smile at him. After that, she walked away with Sonny. Duncan followed them. ¡°Mom, I have something to ask you.¡± The minute Sonny opened his mouth, Duncan subconsciously wished the ground would swallow him up. Even after Duncan had exined to Sonny several times, that kid refused to listen to him. Sonny insisted on telling his mother about it. ¡°Go ahead.¡± Liberty did not know what Duncan had told Sonny. Upon hearing that Sonny wanted to ask her about something, she was quite curious. Sonny said, ¡°Mom, Dunc said he wants to join our family and asked for my permission. As a kid, I can¡¯t decide, so I¡¯m asking for your opinion. If you agree, I¡¯ll give Dunc a reply.¡± With that, he yelled at Duncan, ¡°Dunc, hurry up ande here. I¡¯ve helped you ask Mom.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. Duncan was speechless. How he wished the ground would swallow him up. Either that or perhaps lightning would strike him so he could avoid such embarrassment? Liberty did not know how to answer. She was stunned by her son¡¯s naive question. What did Duncan ask Sonny when she was not around? ¡°Dunc, Dunc, hurry up ande over. I¡¯ve asked Mom. Don¡¯t be scared. You can ask Mom again.¡± Sonny was super enthusiastic about it. ¡°Sonny.¡± Liberty tapped Sonny¡¯s hand that was waving at Duncan. Only then did Sonny realize that his mother¡¯s face was contorted. Did this mean that his mother disagreed? Why? Dunc was really nice. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t you agree to have Dunc join our family? He¡¯s very nice. I like him. But he said he wants to be my father. I already have a father, so I don¡¯t want to be greedy and have two fathers.¡± Duncan wondered if it would be toote for him to bang himself against the wall. Chapter 1623 Chapter 1623 Chapter 1623 Duncan was embarrassed because of Sonny¡¯s words, and so was Liberty. She turned her gaze to Duncan. Duncan grinned at her. Liberty was speechless. She kept quiet, thinking about how to answer her son¡¯s question. ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny¡¯s childish voice rang out again. ¡°Mommy, do you disagree?¡± ¡°Sonny.¡± Liberty said tenderly, ¡°You already have a father. Dunc is your uncle, and he¡¯ll forever be your uncle.¡± ¡°Liberty.¡± Duncan called her. ¡°Mr. Lewis, Sonny is still young and immature. Don¡¯t say these things to him. Sonny isn¡¯t the one to decide on my life.¡± Liberty was solemn when she spoke. Duncan said apologetically, ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s my fault. I shouldn¡¯t have said these things to Sonny at this point. But my feelings for you are real, Liberty. I¡¯m genuinely fond of Sonny and will treat him like my biological son.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, as I said, I don¡¯t want to get into a rtionship now.¡± In Duncan¡¯s face, Liberty saidposedly, ¡°Mr. Lewis, I hope you can understand. I also hope that you¡¯ll forget about it. We¡¯re not a suitable match for each other.¡± Mrs. Lewis was right. She would still disapprove of Liberty even if she reluctantly consented to her son being with Liberty. She and Liberty would continue to argue after Liberty wed into the family. Liberty could not change her background. Moreover, she truly had no intention of remarrying. As she had expressed to Old Mrs. York, she felt that marriage did not bring her happiness. Instead, all she experienced were hurt and misery. She showed devotion and made sacrifices, only to be betrayed. She had already endured marital hardship. Why would she wish to get caught once more now that she has sessfully escaped? She was still capable of surviving at this point without a man. ¡°Why aren¡¯t we a suitable match for each other? Liberty, what did my mom tell you? Did she force This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?. you to stay away from me?¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯t say anything much. I¡¯m the one who thinks that we¡¯re not a suitable match. Mr. Lewis, I¡¯m grateful for your kindness, but I don¡¯t love you. I can¡¯t ept you, just like how you can¡¯t ept Ms. Harmon.¡± Duncan opened his mouth, yet he did not know how to refute her. He did not have a glib tongue as Josh did. In the face of his beloved woman, his speaking skills became worse. He could never find the right words to say and convey his message. He used the most direct way to tell Liberty that he loved her and was going after her. He told her that he was keen on marrying her and not ying games with her feelings. ¡°Mr. Lewis, thank you for helping me to look after Sonny. I¡¯ll take Sonny home first.¡± While speaking, Liberty carried her son and walked away. She walked toward her e¨Cbike and ced her son in the front of her seat. She rode the bike and left the mall shortly. Duncan did not stop her or go after her. He stood frozen on the spot, silently watching Liberty leave. Liberty and Sonny¡¯s figures soon blended in with the darkness of the night. After Liberty returned to her rented house with her son, she took the car key and held her son¡¯s hand. She said to him, ¡°Sonny, I¡¯ll send you to Aunt Ser¡¯s house.¡± ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny was merely three years old. He could not understand most of the things adults said, but he was able to watch and interpret people¡¯s expressions. His mother was unhappy. He hugged Liberty¡¯s leg and looked up with fear glimmering in his dark eyes. He was worried that he made his mother unhappy. ¡°Mom, did I do anything wrong?¡± the kid asked in fear. Liberty squatted and hugged her son. After that, she let go of him. ¡°Sonny, you didn¡¯t.¡± She said gently, ¡°You¡¯re right. You already have a father. We shouldn¡¯t be greedy. You shouldn¡¯t have two fathers.¡± ¡°But you started feeling unhappy after I asked you that question. You also didn¡¯t seem friendly to Dunc. Mom, I like Dunc, but he¡¯s not my father.¡± Sonny already had a father. Chapter 1624 Chapter 1624 Chapter 1624 Sonny was obstinate. When Hank badmouthed Dunc in front of Sonny, Sonny insisted that Dunc was scary. However, Dunc was not a bad guy. No matter what his father told him, Sonny would not change his perception of Dunc. To him, there was a clear boundary between good and bad people. He would not call a bad person good, and vice versa. ¡°I¡¯m not unhappy. Something just crossed my mind.¡± Liberty smiled. ¡°Look, I¡¯m smiling.¡± The kid was clever and sensitive. Seeing his mother smile, Sonny believed that his mother did not get angry at what he said. ¡°Mom, Dunc wants to marry you and make you his wife. Is that true?¡± Sonny asked after feeling relieved from earlier. Liberty was speechless. Duncan actually told Sonny everything. Considering Sonny¡¯s age, would he understand it? Even if Sonny could ept Duncan as his father, his decision would not change Liberty¡¯s mind. ¡°Dunc was just kidding with you. You don¡¯t need to take it seriously.¡± Sonny hummed in acknowledgment. ¡°So Dunc was just kidding.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯ll send you to Aunt Ser¡¯s house.¡± Liberty rose to her feet and held her son¡¯s hand once again. She was going to send him to her sister¡¯s ce. ¡°Okay.¡± Sonny was used to waking up in Serenity¡¯s house every day. Liberty wanted to head to Zachary¡¯s hilltop vi, but she stopped riding her e¨Cbike due to insufficient battery. If the battery ran out during her ride, it would be troublesome. She decided to drive her new car and send her son to the hilltop vi. Serenity just ended her call with Jasmine. Jasmine easily agreed with the increase in investment and purchase ofnd to build an office. She said, ¡°Seren, I haveplete trust in you and Elisa. Once you both make a decision, you can just inform me. I¡¯m totally fine with it.¡± Serenity had known Jasmine for over ten years. They were so close that they did not mind sharing the same pants. Elisa was the rich youngdy of the Stones. She was nice and she was also Serenity¡¯s cousin. Jasmine was not worried that Elisa would trick a business partner like her. ¡°Missus.¡± Sam walked over and said to Serenity, ¡°Missus, Ms. Hunt is here.¡± Serenity acknowledged Sam before she stood up and walked away. Just as she stepped out of the house, she met Liberty and Sonny. ¡°Liberty,¡± Serenity called out. Then, she carried her nephew and kissed him on the cheek. Sonny was always close with Serenity. After Serenity kissed him, he openly kissed her back. Soon, a strong arm wrapped around Serenity. Sonny had not seen Zachary¡¯s face because Sonny¡¯s head was pressed against his shoulder once Zachary hugged Serenity. Amid Sonny¡¯s confusion, he heard Serenity say to Zachary, ¡°Sonny is here.¡± Zachary did not know that Sonny was present. By the time Sonny caught sight of Zachary¡¯s handsome face, he noticed that Serenity was blushing. Sonny blinked his big eyes, not knowing what was happening. When he kissed Serenity just now, Serenity was not blushing as red as a tomato. ¡°Sonny, let me tell you something.¡± Just now, Zachary nted a few kisses on Serenity¡¯s face to remove the kissing marks Sonny left. What a domineering man! Chapter 1625 Chapter 1625 Chapter 1625 When Zachary came out and saw Sonny kissing Serenity¡¯s face, he was actually jealous of the three¨C year¨Cold kid. Zachary carried Sonny into the house while speaking to him. ¡°What do you want to tell me?¡± A look of curiosity washed over Sonny¡¯s face. Then, Zachary gave him a lengthy lecture. Sonny was at a loss for words. He could not understand most of Zachary¡¯s words. However, he managed to grasp one point, namely that he should not always kiss his aunt¡¯s face since he was a boy. However, Serenity was his aunt. Even Serenity could kiss his face. In the end, Sonny thought, ¡®The adult world is soplicated.¡® What Zachary said to Sonny left Serenity feeling speechless. She had no choice but to say to her husband, ¡°Babe, take Sonny upstairs for a shower.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Zachary took Sonny upstairs and said to him, ¡°I¡¯ll help you shower tonight.¡± ¡°I want to bring along my toys for a shower.¡± ¡°You can take your water gun.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± H While heading upstairs, the two of them were negotiating with each other. Liberty said to Serenity, ¡°Zachary is going to spoil Sonny.¡± ¡°No, he won¡¯t. Although he pampers Sonny, he has his principles. He won¡¯t spoil him all the time. You taught Sonny very well, and you don¡¯t pamper him. He knows what he can and can¡¯t do.¡± Right now, Sonny was greatly loved. Both the Stones and the Yorks loved him very much. ¡°Do you have sormething to tell me?¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes settled on Liberty. ¡°Mrs. Lewis asked me out tonight, and we had a talk.¡± Liberty did not need to hide anything in front of her sister. Serenity would discuss things with her and ask for her opinion, and so would Liberty. ¡°Did Mrs. Lewis ask you to stay away from Mr. Lewis by giving you a check worth millions of dors?¡± Liberty red at her sister. Serenityughed. ¡°This is the typical plot in TV dramas.¡± She was not at all worried that her sister would suffer a loss when meeting Mrs. Lewis. ¡°Mrs. Lewis said a lot of things to me. She¡¯s hoping that I¡¯ll cancel the tenancy agreement for All You Can Eat and move out of that street. She¡¯llpensate me for all the losses I suffer from relocating my shop and the expenses needed for renovating my new shop. ¡°Seren, do you think I should relocate?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Before Serenity could answer, Liberty added, ¡°I did consider relocating, but I think it won¡¯t work. Mr. Lewis can eventually find my whereabouts. ¡°Mrs. Lewis is hoping that I can secretly leave Wiltspoon with Sonny. She said she¡¯ll allow me to keep in touch with you and our rtives. And as long as you keep it a secret and don¡¯t expose where I am, Mr. Lewis will give up on me.¡± Serenity stoppedughing. Her expression turned grave and carried a hint of anger. ¡°How could Mrs. Lewis make such a request? What gives her the right to make you leave Wiltspoon? Her son is the one in love with you and going after you. Why doesn¡¯t she ask her son to get out of Wiltspoon to leave you alone?¡± Liberty smiled. Chapter 1626 Chapter 1626 Chapter 1626 ¡°Seren, sure enough, we¡¯re sisters. I refuted Mrs. Lewis this way too. Why should I leave? Why should I make such a sacrifice?¡± ¡°I think running away from the problem won¡¯t solve it. Liberty, don¡¯t move out of that street now. Your shop has been operating there for quite a while, and you finally have some regr customers. If you relocate, you¡¯ll need to start everything from scratch. ¡°As long as you stick to your decision and don¡¯t be convinced by Mr. Lewis, he can¡¯t do anything to you no matter how hard he tries. If you fulfill Mrs. Lewis¡¯s request and leave Wiltspoon with Sonny, Mr. Lewis might never be able to get over you. He might spend his remaining life searching for you and Sonny. ¡°By then, despite having gone after you for a long time, he still hasn¡¯t won your heart. With his mother¡¯s disapproval and persuasion over time, he¡¯ll give up and leave you alone.¡± Liberty thought so too. She would not be able to solve the problem by leaving. Serenity¡¯s thinking was the same as Liberty¡¯s. Therefore, Liberty would not relocate, much less leave Wiltspoon. She would definitely be able to stick to her decision. After pouring her heart out to Serenity and listening to her advice, Liberty did not take her conversation with Mrs. Lewis to heart. She would just leave Mrs. Lewis to suffer. Anyway, she had promised Mrs. Lewis that she would not marry into her family as long as Mrs. Lewis disapproved of it. Even if Mrs. Lewis approved of it, she might not want to do it. ¡°I¡¯ll go home first. I need to work tomorrow.¡± Liberty stood up and bade Serenity goodbye. ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s quitete. You can stay here tonight.¡± ¡°I¡¯m familiar with this route. No matter howte it is, I¡¯m bold enough to drive home alone. As I need to get up in the wee hours, I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll disturb Zachary and you. Zachary is always busy with work. If he doesn¡¯t get a good rest, how is he going to work the next day?¡± Liberty turned her sister down. She insisted that she would not stay overnight at Serenity¡¯s ce. Helpless, Serenity had no choice but to see her sister off. ¡°Liberty, have you thought of which preschool to send Sonny to?¡± Serenity asked about her nephew¡¯s education. Liberty answered, ¡°I want to send Sonny to Golden Grounds Preschool. That preschool happens to be situated somewhere between my house and my diner. It¡¯s convenient for me to send him there and pick him up.¡± The preschool was just a short distance from her house and breakfast shop. ¡°I think Wiltspoon Learning Center is better. Zachary said that¡¯s the best preschool in Wiltspoon.¡± Wiltspoon Learning Center¡¯s fees were huge. However, the fees were not an issue for them. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Liberty said with a smile, ¡°Any Wiltspoonians would know that WLC is the best preschool, but it has the highest fees. The annual fees cost about two hundred thousand dors, which isn¡¯t what an average family can afford. ¡°Besides, it¡¯s widely known that it¡¯s difficult to get into WLC. One might not be able to be enrolled even if they are rich enough to pay the fees.¡± Who would not want their children to get a head start in life? The problem was, even wealthy people would not necessarily be guaranteed a ce in Wiltspoon Learning Center. ¡°I have savings, and my business is currently making a profit. It¡¯s still possible to support Sonny¡¯s preschool education. But can we enroll him in WLC?¡± Liberty¡¯s savings were enough to support Sonny¡¯s three years of preschool. ¡°I¡¯ve researched Golden Grounds. The preschool is considered good in that area. The environment is nice, and the teachers are responsible. Of course, it can¡¯tpare with WLC. Coming from an average background, we can just send our kids to Golden Grounds.¡± Serenity said, ¡°Zachary has asked me about it before. If you n to enroll Sonny in WLC, he can help with it. You don¡¯t have to worry about the fees. You have Zachary and me.¡± ¡°I have enough money. I don¡¯t need both of you to pay Sonny¡¯s fees.¡± Liberty declined Serenity¡¯s offer. After some thought, she said, ¡°If Zachary can help Sonny get into WLC to start preschool, I don¡¯t mind him helping me with it. Tell me how much it costs. I can pay the fees. ¡°Sonny is my son. As his mom, I should pay the fees.¡± Regarding her son¡¯s education, Liberty was not so firm to the extent of stopping her husband¨Cin-w from helping. Simr to other parents, she hoped that her son could learn in the best school. Chapter 1627 Chapter 1627 Chapter 1627 ¡°Alright, I¡¯m going to give Zachary a reply on this.¡± Serenity did not insist on helping Liberty pay Sonny¡¯s school fees. It was fine that Liberty wanted to enroll Sonny in Wiltspoon Learning Center. Anyway, she could afford the fees. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. As Liberty said, Sonny was her son. It was right for her to pay the fees. If Liberty was unable to afford the fees, she would not want to enroll Sonny in Wiltspoon Learning Center. Serenity knew her sister very well. Now that Serenity was the young missus of the Yorks, money was what she needed least. However, Liberty was determined to rely on herself. She refused to mention money matters with her sister. Liberty was afraid of discussing money with Serenity as it would affect Serenity¡¯s status in Zachary¡¯s family and hold her back. Also, Serenity was not the kind who would keep asking for money to help her family. She thought it would be better to teach someone to fish than to give them a fish. ¡°Seren, thank you. Because of you and Zachary, Sonny will get a head start in life.¡± Liberty was extremely grateful to Serenity and Zachary. ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t mention it. I¡¯m going to be angry if you continue to be overly polite. Without you, how would I turn out? We¡¯re sisters, and we depend on each other. I do raise Sonny and treat him like my son. I¡¯m concerned about his education as much as you are. ¡°If we¡¯re socially deprived and can¡¯t afford it, all we can hope is that the preschool sympathizes with us. Since we¡¯re able to afford the fees, we should let Sonny receive the best education.¡± Liberty smiled and said, ¡°Alright. I¡¯m not going to be excessively courteous with you anymore. It¡¯s gettingte. You¡¯d better go back and rest. You don¡¯t need to see me off. It¡¯s not my first time visiting you either. I¡¯ve long treated this as my home.¡± ¡°You said you treat this as your home, but you went to stay in your rented house once you recovered. I wanted to buy you a house, yet you refused to ept it.¡± Serenityined about her sister. ¡°I can afford a house, so I don¡¯t need you to buy me one. This is the same as buying a car. If I need a car, I¡¯ll definitely buy it. You don¡¯t have to gift me anything. I hope to achieve everything on my own.¡± Serenity stopped speaking. Zachary had started to draft a list of betrothal gifts. He had a discussion with Serenity about giving Liberty a vi. == Nevertheless, he was worried that Liberty would reject it. He gave Serenity the mission of convincing Liberty to ept the vi. Serenity thought, ¡®Such a difficult mission.¡± Serenity watched Liberty drive away from her vi. She stood at the entrance, watching Liberty leave until her car was out of sight. Only then did she turn around and return to her house. ¡°Aunt Ser.¡± Sonny, who had just showered, dashed out with a big water gun and pointed it at Serenity. However, he did not dare to shoot at Serenity. He was worried Zachary would beat his butt if he wet Serenity¡¯s shirt. He had wet Serenity¡¯s shirt before. Even so, Serenity was not mad but Zachary was. Zachary lectured Sonny verbally and even hit his butt. Although he did not beat Sonny badly, Sonny learned his lesson. Sonny learned not to aim at anyone when ying with water guns. Serenity raised her hands as a sign of surrender. Then, sheughed and said, ¡°Sonny, I surrender.¡± She went forward to carry the kid. ¡°You smell good, Sonny.¡± ¡°Aunt Elisa is the one who smells good,¡± Sonny said. Elisa always exuded a pleasant scent, and so did Serenity. Nevertheless, Serenity¡¯s scent was fainter than Elisa¡¯s. Serenity grinned and said, ¡°It¡¯s because Aunt Elisa wears perfume.¡± Serenity disliked wearing perfume. Zachary had given Serenity a lot of branded perfumes. After realizing that she disliked them, Zachary stopped giving them to her. ¡°Aunt Ser, has my mom gone home?¡± ¡°Mm. She needs to go to work tomorrow, so she went back early to rest.¡± Chapter 1628 Chapter 1628 Chapter 1628 Sonny hummed in acknowledgment. Serenity ced him down and held him as they went downstairs. Just as Zachary was descending, he saw Serenity and Sonny. He said with a grin, ¡°This kid is such a fast runner. I just only helped him put on his clothes, and he ran even more quickly than a rabbit. Has Liberty left?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Soon, Serenity and Zachary sat on the couch. Sonny was ying in front of the couple. ¡°Babe, Liberty said if you can help Sonny get into WLC, please do help. Just let her know how much it costs and she¡¯ll bear the fees.¡® ¡°If I weren¡¯t able to help, I wouldn¡¯t have mentioned it to you. I¡¯ll handle it. I¡¯ll make sure my nephew gets into WLC for free. Even if fees are involved, I¡¯ll pay for Liberty. ¡°Regarding the fees-¡± Before Zachary could finish his sentence, Serenity interjected, ¡°Liberty said Sonny is her son, so she should pay the fees. This is her duty as a mother. It¡¯s only because Liberty can afford to pay the fees that she wants to enroll Sonny in the best preschool. ¡°If we insist on paying Sonny¡¯s fees, Liberty won¡¯t enroll him in the best preschool. Babe, I think it¡¯s quite impossible for me toplete the mission you assigned to me.¡± Zachary thought about her sister¨Cinw¡¯s temperament before he replied, ¡°Fine. We¡¯ll let Liberty pay the school fees, but she must ept the vi we¡¯re giving to her. Let¡¯s take a look at the vi when we¡¯re avable. Judging from the exquisite renovation of the house, Liberty won¡¯t need to dedicate her time and effort to renovating it.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Serenity then told Zachary that Mrs. Lewis had asked Liberty out for a talk tonight. Zachary was not at all surprised. If it were not because Mrs. Lewis feared Zachary and the Stones, she would have forcefully kicked Liberty out of Wiltspoon. ¡°We shall let Liberty and Duncan settle their matters. As long as Mrs. Lewis isn¡¯t too domineering toward Liberty, let¡¯s not have a hand in it.¡± Serenity nodded. Liberty returned to her house alone. She was astonished to see her ex¨Chusband, Hank, waiting for her at the gate. Her brows furrowed. She could guess why Hank came over. ¡°You¡¯re back.¡± This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Hank asked politely, ¡°Where¡¯s Sonny?¡± He was carrying two bags. One bag contained snacks, whereas the other contained different kinds of toys. He bought these for his son. ¡°Sonny is staying in Seren¡¯s house so it¡¯s convenient for Jim to send him to his lessons.¡± ¡°Sonny is starting preschool. Have you decided on which one to send him to? If it¡¯s not convenient for you to drop him off or pick him up, I can get my mom¡¯s help. I¡¯m sure my mom is ready to help.¡± Hank thought that since Sonny was his son, he should do his best to help. ¡°No need. Jim will drop Sonny off and pick him up. I haven¡¯t made up my mind yet.¡± Before Zachary gave her a definite reply, Liberty would not tell Hank that she would enroll Sonny in the best preschool. Liberty pushed open the door of her house and entered. With Hank following behind her, she did not shut the door. ¡°I¡¯ve bought some food and toys for Sonny. I was supposed to y with him tonight¡­ I broke my promise.¡± After Hank left the mall with Jessica, he insisted on taking her to the hospital for a check¨Cup. After the doctor examined Jessica¡¯s body and found out that she was fine, it hit Hank that Jessica lied to him. He was a little angry, but he controlled his temper considering that Jessica was pregnant. Chapter 1629 Chapter 1629 Chapter 1629 After leaving the hospital, Hank even apanied Jessica to another mall to get what she wanted. When they got home, he could not stop thinking about the scene of Duncan and Sonny¡¯s close interaction, which exasperated him. His concern was that his son would be snatched away by Duncan and end up calling Duncan ¡°Dad¡±. As soon as Jessica went to bed, he secretly left the house to buy some snacks and toys. Then, he rushed to his ex-wife¡¯s ce. He never thought of saving his rtionship with Liberty. There was no turning back. He could not get together with Liberty anymore. However, Sonny was his son. How could his son behave intimately with the man who was pursuing his ex-wife? Duncan had seriously challenged Hank¡¯s identity as Sonny¡¯s father. ¡°Is your wife¡¯s baby fine?¡± Liberty asked indifferently. Slightly ashamed, Hank answered, ¡°The baby is fine.¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. ¡°Sonny has been eating and ying a lot. You don¡¯t have to buy him so many things.¡± ¡°I know he doesn¡¯t need these, but I want to send him gifts. Liberty, was Sonny upset after I left?¡± Hank felt sorry for his son. In the past, he hardly spent time with his son. At that time, he was in the first flush of love with Jessica, so he put all his attention on her. After getting a divorce, he could count the number of times he apanied his son with one hand. ¡°Sonny was a little upset, but he soon got over it.¡± When Hank heard that his son was upset because he left, he felt more at ease. At least his son cared about him. Liberty poured a ss of warm water for Hank. Hank fell quiet for a moment. He then looked at Liberty and asked, ¡°Liberty, you and Mr. Lewis¡­¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Liberty asked him. ¡°Nothing. I just feel that both of you aren¡¯t a suitable match. I don¡¯t have the right to stop you from remarrying, but as Sonny¡¯s mom, you¡¯ll bring him along when you remarry. If you marry a bad partner, I¡¯m worried my son will get hurt. So I¡¯m just asking.¡± Hank came up with an excuse to conceal his jealousy. ¡°Liberty, you must think before you act. Think carefully. Mr. Lewis isn¡¯t suitable for you.¡± Liberty was not angry. However, she said nonchntly, ¡°Mr. Brown, I don¡¯t dare trouble you to care about my rtionships. You can just live your own life.¡± Currently, Hank was a Uber driver. Although it was not a high-paying job, at least he had an ie. His family life was dramatic. Liberty knew her ex-mother-inw and ex-sister-inw very well. Even though Jessica was pregnant, the two of them would make things difficult for Jessica. It was anyone¡¯s guess if Jessica could sessfully deliver the baby. If it turned out to be a boy, all would be well. If it was a girl, the two of them would certainly torture Jessica. Anyway, Jessica would not be able to lead a peaceful life. This would be Jessica¡¯s karma for ruining Liberty¡¯s marriage and snatching her husband. Hank was embarrassed. ¡°Mr. Brown, if there¡¯s nothing else, please take your leave. It¡¯s gettingte. I need rest as I have to work tomorrow.¡± ¡°Liberty, I¡­¡± ¡°Mr. Brown, I believe you came without getting your wife¡¯s permission. If she finds out that you secretly came here to visit Sonny, she might have a bitter row with you.¡± Jessica disliked Hank being overly concerned about Sonny. Liberty was well aware of that. Chapter 1630 Chapter 1630 Chapter 1630 Jessica did not like how worried her husband¡¯s family was about Sonny before she became pregnant. She hated it even more now that she was pregnant. At the mention of Jessica, Hank could not sit for long. He got up and left shortly. After walking her ex-husband out, Liberty closed the door and locked it. She felt a rush of thrill in her. It was because she was seeing her ex-husband living a pathetic life after he remarried. On the other hand, Liberty and her son were leading a better life. This was the best revenge against her ex-husband. She did not speak again that night. Once the sun rose, it signaled a new beginning. In the following days, both Serenity and Liberty were busy. Duncan continued to have daily breakfast at All You Can Eat, give Liberty flowers, and send her all kinds of gifts. Although Liberty rejected all his presents, he was still persistent. Zachary enrolled Sonny in Wiltspoon Learning Center. In September, Sonny would start his preschool education there. The temperature rose and June was soon arriving. The weather in June was extraordinarily warm in Wiltspoon. Josh and Jasmine hurriedly returned from their honeymoon that took ce in June. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Josh purposely asked for two months of marriage leave from Zachary in order to spend more time with his newly-wedded wife. When the two of them left for their honeymoon, they nned to have fun for two months. It turned out that they returned after a month or so. After learning that Josh and Jasmine ended their honeymoon trip earlier, Serenity instinctively felt that something was wrong. As soon as she received the news, Elisa happened toe back from her hometown. Serenity and Elisa then visited the Buchams. Upon arriving at the Buchams¡¯ ce, Serenity and Elisa were shocked to learn that Jasmine was lying on the bed. They were wondering what happened to Jasmine. ¡°Mrs Bucham, I¡¯m going upstairs to visit Jasmine. Serenity was anxious. She wanted to know what happened to her best friend. Just as she took a seat, she suggested going upstairs to visit Jasmine. Mrs Bucham said with a smile, ¡°Alright Let me take both of you up.¡± It was because Josh was still upstairs. Mrs. Bucham ordered a servant to lead Serenity and Elisa to the upper floor. Elisa held Serenity¡¯s hand and said softly, ¡°Seren, don¡¯t be too nervous or scared. Judging from Mrs. Bucham¡¯s cheerful mood and bright smile, Jasmine should be fine. Even if something happened to her, it¡¯s probably something good.¡± The Buchams were content with Jasmine. When Josh was going after Jasmine, Mrs. Bucham handed the heirloom to Jasmine and considered Jasmine her eldest daughter-inw. 1 If something bad happened to Jasmine, Mrs. Bucham would not be in such a good mood. At this thought, Serenity found it reasonable. She was so concerned about Jasmine that she never thought of this point. If it turned out to be something good¡­ She whispered to Elisa, ¡°Could Jas be pregnant?¡± Getting pregnant during their honeymoon was such a delight. If Jasmine was pregnant, it would be unsurprising that Josh quickly took Jasmine home. The servant took Serenity and Elisa upstairs. Once they arrived at Jasmine and Josh¡¯s room, servant knocked on the door. ¡°Sir, Mrs. York and Ms. Stone are here to visit Missus.¡± the Josh, who was apanying his beloved wife, made Jasmine rest on the bed. Upon hearing the maid¡¯s message, he said to Jasmine, ¡°Serenity and Elisa are here. Let me open the door for them. You can chat with them, but you must stay in bed and rest.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°I¡¯m pregnant, not sick. I can¡¯t feel anything as I¡¯ve just gotten pregnant. It shouldn¡¯t have been a problem to carry on with our trip, yet you insisted on ending the trip and sending me back. You don¡¯t even allow me to get off my bed.¡± It was as though Jasmine was a patient. Chapter 1631 Chapter 1631 Chapter 1631 ¡°We have to be cautious during the first trimester. If you want to travel, we can do that after the baby is born. I promise I¡¯ll have fun with you until you¡¯re tired of it.¡± Josh made a promise to his wife. The baby in her womb was of utmost importance. Although Jasmine had a healthy body and nothing would probably happen as they were still in the early stages of the pregnancy, Josh did not dare to be careless. Therefore, after finding out Jasmine was pregnant, he stopped their trip immediately and flew back with her in a rush. He even borrowed his family¡¯s private ne from Julian. Upon hearing his sister-inw was pregnant, Julian took it seriously. Right after Josh called him, he arranged for a private ne to fly Josh and Jasmine back. Josh was the first person to have gotten married in their generation. The baby in Jasmine¡¯s belly would be the first of the Bucham family¡¯s new generation. After the entire family was informed of her pregnancy, they were excited. Their rtives had even sent over many supplements before the husband and wife returned. Some older rtives even bought and gave many household items that would be necessary once the baby was born. With so many people paying attention to Jasmine¡¯s pregnancy, there was no way Josh would not be nervous. ¡°We¡¯ll be unwilling to part with the baby when she or he arrives. How can we still go traveling? Quick, open the door for Seren and Elisa.¡± Jasmine was about to get up, but Josh quickly stopped her. He said, ¡°Lie down. I¡¯ll open the door for them.¡± As he spoke, he opened the door in a hurry to prevent his wife from getting off the bed. ¡°Mr. Bucham.¡± Upon seeing Josh, Serenity and Elisa greeted him simultaneously. Josh shifted his body and let them in with a smile. When Serenity passed by him, he called her in a soft voice. She stopped and looked toward him. ¡°Serenity, please keep an eye on Jasmine. Don¡¯t let her be on her feet or move around. We just came back after a few hours of flight. She must be tired, but she can¡¯t sit still. She¡¯ll be like a monkey who can¡¯t settle down once I leave.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll keep an eye on Jas on you. I won¡¯t let her walk around.¡± Josh finally felt at ease and left the room to give the three women space. After going downstairs, he asked two maids to bring some tea, desserts, and fruits upstairs. ¡°Seren, Elisa, you guys are finally here for a visit.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Jasmine sat up and was about to get off the bed. Seren quickly said, ¡°Jas, just sit and don¡¯te. down. Mr. Bucham requested that I keep an eye on you and not let you be on your feet.¡± Upon hearing that, Jasmine was speechless. Sheined, ¡°He¡¯s treating me like I¡¯m a severe patient.¡± ¡°Are you pregnant?¡± Serenity and Elisa could more or less confirm that Jasmine was pregnant. A grin appeared on Jasmine¡¯s face. It was a happy smile. She said, ¡°Yes. I didn¡¯t think it would be this fast. I was fertile when I got married, and we went on our honeymoon. My period didn¡¯te. when it should, but I didn¡¯t pay attention then. ¡°When Aunt Flo didn¡¯t arrive for half a month, I told Josh about it. He brought me to a local hospital to get a checkup, and we found out we were pregnant. He got anxious and immediately called Julian, who arranged for a private ne to bring us back. ¡°We only came home today. After returning, Josh insisted that I was tired after sitting on the ne. for several hours and told me to rest on the bed. I¡¯m not tired at all. I¡¯m so excited, and I want to share this good news with you two.¡± Chapter 1632 Chapter 1632 Chapter 1632 Elisa smiled and said, ¡°You and Josh are so lucky to have gotten pregnant during your honeymoon. Congrattions, Jasmine. If we had known you were pregnant, we would¡¯ve brought some supplements for you. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. ¡°Seren heard from Zachary that you and Josh had ended your honeymoon and returned ahead of schedule. She was worried about you and brought me over in a rush to visit you. We didn¡¯t manage to buy anything.¡± Jasmine said hastily, ¡°You don¡¯t have to give me supplements. Josh¡¯s rtives had already sent many of them over before I returned. I was shocked.¡± Seeing how a huge family, especially a united one, gave gifts shocked her. ¡°I¡¯m in the early stages of pregnancy. There¡¯s no need for additional supplements yet. I just have to eat three meals a day. Please don¡¯t give me more supplements and let me off the hook.¡± Jasmine rubbed her palms together to beg her friends. It made all of themugh. The maids served some fruits and desserts. Jasmine invited her two friends to enjoy the desserts. Serenity and Elisa did not hesitate. They had just returned from Serenity¡¯s hometown and felt hungry too. They ate a few pieces of dessert to fill their stomachs. ¡°Do you get morning sickness, Jasmine?¡± Elisa poured a ss of water for herself and took a sip. She asked Jasmine that question out of curiosity. ¡°My sister-inw is still having morning sickness. That¡¯ll probably continue until she gives birth.¡± Elisa felt how difficult being a mother was every time she saw her sister-inw vomiting. She often reminded her brother privately to treat Alice well and not let Alice down. Her sister-in-w was going through so much to give birth to his child. If Clive dared do Alice wrong, Elisa would be the first to deal with him. However, she got knocked on the head several times for saying that to her brother. Clive thought he had already doted on his wife a lot. He was speechless that his sister still threatened him that way. Therefore, he could not resist knocking her on the head. ¡°I just got pregnant. I don¡¯t have morning sickness yet, but I hope it won¡¯t get too terrible.¡± Jasmine knew the missus of the Stone family had severe morning sickness. Mr. Stone cared for his wife so much that there was a time he even considered getting his wife an abortion. Serenity and Zachary had to persuade him to keep the baby. ¡°Morning sickness is different for everybody. Most people usually have it up to their first trimester and feel better afterward.¡± Serenity had not gotten pregnant yet, but she had helped to raise Sonny. She had some experience. ¡°Some do not have morning sickness at all. That¡¯s the best. They can eat and sleep without vomiting.¡± Jasmine smiled and said, ¡°I hope I¡¯ll be one of them.¡± She wanted to ask her best friend if there was any good news, but the words did not escape her mouth. Serenity would definitely let her know if she was pregnant. Since Serenity did not tell her, it meant that she was not pregnant. If she were to ask her about it, Serenity would not feel Jasmine had gotten her marriage license nearly a year after Serenity did. She had gotten pregnant during her honeymoon, but there was still no news from Serenity yet. She was afraid Serenity would feel pressurized if she asked her about it. ¡°How¡¯s our vegetable farm business?¡± Jasmine asked something business-rted instead. She was changing the topic to prevent Serenity from thinking about her not being pregnant yet. Serenity replied, ¡°Negotiations for the newly-rented vegetable farm are already done. We¡¯re preparing to sign the contract. We rented an extrand of 33 acres and a house in town to act as a management hub for now. Ourpany will be in the city, but we haven¡¯t researched where we¡¯ll be renting our office.¡± Elisa said, ¡°Establishing apany is a serious matter. Let¡¯s not be hasty and slowly choose a lucky ce. That way, our business will expand and prosper well.¡± Chapter 1633 Chapter 1633 Chapter 1633 ¡°Mm, you two can decide. Let me know if there¡¯s anything I can help with.¡± Jasmine felt she did not help much aside from contributing some money. She felt sorry. Serenity and Elisa said simultaneously, ¡°You can just focus on caring for the baby.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°I can work even if I¡¯m pregnant. Many people still go to work even though they¡¯re pregnant and only go on maternity leave closer to their due dates.¡± ¡°That¡¯s what other people do. You¡¯re different from them. You should just stay at home and be a national treasure¡¯,¡± Serenity smiled and added, ¡°With how nervous Mr. Bucham is, he probably won¡¯t allow it if you want to visit the store. Jasmine was speechless. After the three women chatted for some time, Josh knocked on the door. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. He entered the room while holding a drink ced on a tray. It was a supplement drink for Jasmine to replenish her nutrients. ¡°Serenity, Zachary is here to pick you up. He¡¯s downstairs.¡± Josh told Serenity as he walked over. He ced the drink on the bedside table. He said to Elisa, ¡°Ms. Stone, Mr. Johnson has alsoe to pick you up. He said he wants to treat you to a meal.¡± Only then did the women realize the sun had already set. ¡°Rest well, Jasmine. We¡¯ll take our leave now and visit you another day.¡± Upon hearing that their sweethearts had arrived to pick them up, Serenity and Elisa did not linger. After they left, Josh said to Jasmine, ¡°Dear, Mom made this drink for you personally. It¡¯s not that hot anymore. You can drink this first and have dinner half an hourter.¡± Jasmine said, ¡°I¡¯m not hungry yet.¡± ¡°Did you have desserts too?¡± ¡°No. I think I don¡¯t like eating sweet stuff anymore.¡± Jasmine said she was not hungry, but she still took the drink. Her mother-inw had prepared it for her, so she had to show her respect and finish the drink. ¡°What do you like to eat? I¡¯ll buy it for you.¡± Josh knew that a woman¡¯s appetite would usually change after getting pregnant. ¡°I¡¯m craving raw mangoes that are peeled, cut into cubes, and sprinkled with paprika and tangerine peel powder.¡± Josh said, ¡°I¡¯ll have someone head out and buy it for youter.¡± As long as it was something that Jasmine wanted and could eat, he would satisfy her. Josh sat by the bedside. After Jasmine finished drinking the supplement and put the cup down, he stretched his hand and touched her lower abdomen. A wide smile appeared on his handsome face. He said, ¡°Baby, your mom took a supplement drink. You should drink up too and grow quickly.¡± ¡°I just got pregnant. The embryo hasn¡¯t even developed into a fetus and can¡¯t drink anything. Do you think it¡¯s like a balloon that can expand once you blow into it?¡± Josh chuckled. ¡°Being pregnant for nine months feels like a long time. It¡¯s June now. Based on the duration, the baby will only be born in spring next year.¡± He pulled Jasmine over into his embrace and said happily, ¡°Jasmine, I feel happy and blissful now.¡± ¡°Haven¡¯t you gotten excited enough?¡± Jasmine said to him whileughing. Aside from bringing her back in a rush after discovering she was pregnant, Josh had been giddy with delight. If she had not told him to keep the news till the first trimester ended, he would probably have his phone in his hand continuously to call his friends and rtives and tell them about it. Chapter 1634 Chapter 1634 Chapter 1634 ¡°No. ¡°I just told Dad and Mom about the pregnancy. They¡¯re ted too.¡± While Jasmine was chatting with her friends, Josh remembered that he had not informed his mother-inw yet. He quickly called her to break the good news to her. The Sox family was happy after learning about the pregnancy. ¡°Telling Dad and Mom is enough. Let¡¯s not reveal it to the entire world for now. There¡¯s a high risk. of unexpected situations urring during the early stages of pregnancy. It¡¯s not suitable to spread the news too early. Revealing our pregnancy when it bes stable after the first trimester isn¡¯t toote anyway.¡± Josh nodded repeatedly. He also heard that families would rarely reveal pregnancies during the first three months because signs of miscarriage would ur easily in the early stages of pregnancy. If the pregnancy were announced too early, no one would feel good if a miscarriage were to happen. While Josh and Jasmine were discussing the baby¡¯s matters in the room, Serenity and Elisa met Zachary and Remy after going downstairs. Mrs. Bucham was greeting the two CEOS. When Zachary saw Serenitying downstairs, he stood up and said to Mrs. Bucham, ¡°Sorry to have disturbed you, Mrs. Bucham. I¡¯ll be taking Serenity home.¡± ¡°It¡¯s no trouble at all. We¡¯re grateful to Mrs. York and Ms. Stone foring over to visit Jasmine. Mrs. York, Ms. Stone, doe over often when you¡¯re free,¡± Mrs. Bucham said with a smile. With her daughter-inw pregnant, her son probably would not allow her daughter-inw to move around anymore. However, staying at home every day would be boring. If Serenity and Elisa could visit often, Jasmine would still have someone to talk to. ¡°We will, Mr.s Bucham.¡± The four of them bid goodbye to Mrs. Bucham and left the Buchams¡¯ vi with her seeing them off. Zachary had brought bodyguards over. Since Serenity would be sitting in Zachary¡¯s car, her car would be driven back by the bodyguards. After Serenity got inside the car, her smile disappeared. She touched her t lower abdomen and said to Zachary, ¡°We¡¯ve been husband and wife longer than Josh and Jasmine, but I haven¡¯t gotten pregnant yet. Jasmine had gotten pregnant during their honeymoon.¡± Zachary held her hand and consoled her, ¡°We¡¯re not in a rush. Let¡¯s go with the flow. Moreover, the psychic said we¡¯ll only receive good news when falles. It¡¯s only June now. Fall is still far away. ¡°Seren, everyone¡¯s constitution is different. Ms. Sox might be especially fertile, so she managed to get pregnant during her honeymoon. Don¡¯t pressure yourself just because of her pregnancy. My family and I have never rushed you to get pregnant. We¡¯re fine with the way we are now.¡± Zachary continued gently, ¡°I prefer spending time with just the both of us. The baby will be our third wheel after they¡¯re born. Most of your attention will be on the child, so you¡¯ll neglect me. I dislike you neglecting me the most.¡± After being consoled by Zachary, Serenity stopped thinking about babies. She said, ¡°I was just lamenting. Don¡¯t be nervous. I won¡¯t put pressure on myself.¡± She was very busy too. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Once she started getting busy, she would not have time to think about children. ¡°I think Josh and Ms. Sox are having their child too early. They haven¡¯t even had enough fun and got pregnant just after getting married. During the pregnancy, Josh will have to practice abstinence. Although he can quench his desire asionally, will he be satisfied? They¡¯re newlyweds.¡± Josh had to practice abstinence just after experiencing the taste of ecstasy. Zachary sympathized with his friend. Serenityughed. ¡°Listen to yourself¡­ Other people will say that you¡¯re just being jealous.¡± It was because she had not gotten pregnant yet. Zachary had not experienced the feeling of being a soon-to-be father. Therefore, he could only make fun of Josh this way. Zachary said, ¡°I¡¯m just jealous. That¡¯s how I truly feel. You¡¯re not a man, so you won¡¯t be able to experience it.¡± Serenity said, ¡°You can say those words in front of me, but please don¡¯t say them to Mr. Bucham.¡± Zachary smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I know the limits.¡± Chapter 1635 Chapter 1635 Chapter 1635 ¡°You guys were going to start an office in your hometown. How did it go? Did you guys manage to rent an office?¡± Zachary changed the topic. ¡°We managed to rent an office and hired several managers. They¡¯ll officially start working next Monday.¡± Zachary praised her, ¡°You and Elisa are beginners in business, but you two are very efficient.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s all Elisa¡¯s work. She does things hurriedly, but she loves to push the responsibilities to me and let go after having a rough idea.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve said before that Elisa doesn¡¯t have enough patience. That¡¯s her personality. She¡¯s lucky to have met such honest partners as you and Ms. Sox. Otherwise, she won¡¯t even know if she¡¯s being scammed.¡± Grandma May had a sharp eye for people. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Back when Elisa liked Zachary, Grandma May had already told him that she was not suited to be the York family¡¯s missus. However, he would not like Elisa even without Grandma May¡¯s remarks. After all, he and Clive were like enemies. How could he fall in love with his rival¡¯s sister? If Serenity had reunited with Mrs. Stone before getting married to him, he would not agree to marry Serenity even if Grandma May had hit him with her walking cane. He had no choice because Mrs. Stone only found Serenity after their marriage. He could only mend his rtionship with Clive for Serenity¡¯s sake. Luckily, the Stone family valued Serenity and Liberty enough. Whenever they did anything that targeted York Corporation, they would take Serenity into consideration and not be too cruel in their moves. At least they left some room for maneuver. Although the two mega-corporations did not have partnerships, they were no longer aspetitive as before. ¡°But Elisa has many good qualities. She has wide connections and resources. It¡¯s just that she¡¯s slightly lazy and dislikes socializing.¡± Serenity felt she was not as good as Elisa yet. After all, Elisa¡¯s starting point was way ahead of hers. Even if she put lots of effort into studying, assimting into the elite circle, and getting used to the nuance of the business world, it had only been a short time; she still had many shorings. Zachary said gently, ¡°You and Elisaplement each other. You have what she doesn¡¯t, and vice versa. The business you two invest in and start together will be sessful. Seren, I believe the three of you will be the new big shots in Wiltspoon¡¯s business world in three to five years.¡± Leaving their identities aside, they would definitely be the rising stars of the business world. Serenity said with a smile, ¡°Thank you for saying so. I hope those words wille true too.¡± Zachary embraced her and pecked her lips gently. He whispered, ¡°It¡¯s fine as long as you don¡¯t neglect me.¡± ¡°No way. Even if I do neglect someone, it¡¯ll never be you.¡± ¡°But you promised to write a love letter to me before. I haven¡¯t received your love letter up till now.¡± A hint of panic shed across Serenity¡¯s eyes. She had forgotten about it. She had been busy with her business and tending to the bookstore. She often had to check on how the York family¡¯s smaller businesses were doing as well while hiding her identity most of the time. That was the only way she could check whether the store assistants and managers were treating their work seriously. Therefore, she would forget many things she promised others once she got busy. However, Serenity never forgot Zachary. She did not forget him and always kept hirn on her mind. If she did not send him a message one day or call him to say she loved him several times, he would either act like a resentful husband orin to her sister that she only prioritized earning money and neglected him. He would also torture her on the bed every other day until she begged for forgiveness and promised she would not neglect him or make him sulk again. Since she and Elisa became business partners, Serenity realized that Zachary had gotten more clingy. Sometimes, she would think he was a piece of gum. ¡°I¡¯ll write it after going home tonight. I promise. I¡¯ll hand the love letter to you before you go to work tomorrow.¡± Serenity could only remedy the situation. Zachary stared at her intensely. Chapter 1636 Chapter 1636 Chapter 1636 After being husband and wife for so long, Serenity understood the meaning behind his gaze. She nced at the driver and the bodyguard on the passenger seat quickly. She saw that they did not turn their heads. The driver was focused on driving while the bodyguard was on his phone. It was how the bodyguard protected himself. If he were watching videos or reading novels on his phone, he could divert his attention and not notice what his boss and the missus were talking about. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Serenity gave Zachary a quick kiss. Only then did he let her off the hook. He stressed in a low voice, ¡°I want to receive your love letter to me before I head to work tomorrow.¡± ¡°Of course. Definitely.¡± Serenity promised him with a grin. ¡°Remy came to pick Elisa up too. Actually, they do get along with each other well.¡± Zachary hummed. ¡°Remy might leave Wiltspoon for some time.¡± ¡°Why? Is he going on a business trip?¡± Serenity could not resist asking because Remy liked Elisa. ¡°Did you forget? Mrs. Young-Johnson is about to give birth. After she gives birth, Remy will definitely have to return to visit his niblings. He can still have a look at the babies in the hospital, but it won¡¯t be convenient for him to visit them at home after Mrs. Young-Johnson gets discharged and returns home to recover. ¡°That¡¯s why he¡¯s returning early and staying there for several days. He¡¯ll probably wait until his sister-in- law gets discharged to return to Wiltspoon. Then, he¡¯ll go back again for the sip and see shower.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°You¡¯re right. I forgot about it.¡± Would Jane give birth to two sons or two daughters? Or would she have a boy and a girl? After Jane gave birth, she and Zachary would go over for the sip and see shower too. She wanted to get a piece of luck from Jane. While Zachary and Serenity were chatting about their daily lives, it was inconvenient for Remy and Elisa to have a conversation as they drove separate cars. When they arrived at a hotel under Stone Group, they sat in a private room Remy had booked beforehand. After that, Remy said to Elisa, ¡°Elisa, I have to head to Annenburg tomorrow.¡± Elisa was stunned. Then, she asked, ¡°Is it a family matter?¡± She had not been to the Johnsons¡¯ house or met his family. ¡°My sister-inw is about to give birth. I want to go back and visit her.¡± Elisa understood. She said with a smile, ¡°Aren¡¯t you only returning after the baby is born?¡± ¡°I haven¡¯t gone back for quite some time. I should go back and apany my elders. My grandparents kept nagging me as I rarely went back this year.¡± When Remy spoke those words, he was gazing at Elisa affectionately. In the past, he would return home twice a month and stay there for several days. Sometimes, he would only go back to Wiltspoon to work after his brother urged him. Ever since Remy fell in love with Elisa, he rarely went home, especially after Andrew¡¯s appearance. Although nothing had happened between Andrew and Elisa, Remy knew that Andrew had gone to the Stone family¡¯s house twice afterward. For both times, Mrs. Stone had run into a minor ident and was sent home by Andrew after coincidentally meeting him. Remy did not believe that it was a coincidence. It was obvious that Mrs. Stone wanted to bring Andrew and Elisa together. Chapter 1637 Chapter 1637 Chapter 1637 With a love rival present, Remy was even more reluctant to leave Wiltspoon. He feared Elisa would be Andrew¡¯s girlfriend when he returned after leaving for some time. ¡°You do have to go back and apany your family,¡± Elisa said considerately. ¡°Elisa, are you willing to go back with me?¡± Remy asked. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. He wished to bring her back to let his elders meet her. Although the elders knew he had someone he liked in Wiltspoon and had seen Elisa¡¯s pictures, they had not met her in person yet. A person as carefree as Elisa blushed because of Remy¡¯s words. She said, ¡°We aren¡¯t officially together yet. It¡¯s still too early to meet our parents.¡± ¡°As for my mom¡­ I can go with you to meet your parents anytime if you manage to get past my mom.¡± Disappointment clouded Remy¡¯s eyes, but his fighting spirit reignited quickly. With a gentle smile, he said, ¡°I hope I don¡¯t have to wait too long for that day toe. I¡¯ll definitely clear Mrs. Stone¡¯s hurdle.¡± If he could not get past Mrs. Stone after working hard, he would have no choice but to let his parents, brother, and sister¨Cinw intervene. At that moment, a waiter knocked on the door and entered with a bouquet. Upon seeing the waiter entering, Remy stood up and received the bouquet from him. After that, he passed the flowers to Elisa and gazed at her affectionately. His smile resembled the spring breeze in March. ¡°Elisa, I ordered these flowers beforehand. It was inconvenient for me to bring a bouquet when I went to the Buchams¡® house to pick you up just now.¡± Elisa epted the bouquet with a grin. ¡°I¡¯ve been receiving flowers from you several times every day.¡± Remy¡¯s strategy of gifting flowers was aggressive. He would give Elisa flowers several times a day. Aside from flowers, there were also various types of gifts. Ultimately, he wanted to please her in every way possible. He wanted her to experience being pursued and cherished by someone. It was sweet, happy, and exhrating. ¡°It¡¯s fine if you like it and are happy.¡± ¡°I love it. I¡¯m ted too. I¡¯ve been in a good mood every day as I could receive flowers from a handsome guy daily.¡± Remy reached out and held Elisa¡¯s hand. ¡°Elisa, my greatest wish is to be by your side every day and make you happy. You have the brightest and sweetest smile. It lights up my heart like the sunshine. ¡°I feel like the happiest person in the world whenever I¡¯m with you.¡± Remy was skilled at whispering sweet words and honeyed phrases. Elisa was over the moon upon hearing those words. She had the urge to get married to him there and then. Ring, ring¡­ Just when they were totally engrossed with each other, Elisa¡¯s phone rang. It was an unexpected disruption. Elisa put the flowers aside and reached for her bag to take her phone inside it. She gestured at Remy to stay quiet when she saw the caller¡¯s name. She said, ¡°It¡¯s the queen of my family.¡± She picked up her mother¡¯s call. ¡°Mom.¡± Elisa addressed her mother sweetly. Mrs. Stone, who was on the other end of the line, asked, ¡°Elisa, are you and Serenity not back yet?¡± ¡°We¡¯re back, but we found out Jasmine was back from her honeymoon when we returned. Seren and I went to the Buchams¡® house. Mom, I have great news for you. Jasmine¡¯s pregnant.¡± There was envy in Remy¡¯s eyes upon hearing that. However, he soon thought of something that made the envy dissipate slightly. Chapter 1638 Chapter 1638 Chapter 1638 Mrs. Stoneughed and said, ¡°This is good news. She got lucky right after her wedding.¡± ¡°The entire Bucham family is excited. Mr. Bucham is super nervous. He¡¯s even treating Jasmine like a national treasure.¡± Mrs. Stone smiled. ¡°That¡¯s natural. Josh is the first to marry in his generation, so the baby in Jasmine¡¯s belly will be the first grandchild. It¡¯s a given that the Buchams will treat this seriously ¡± The first child always brought a lot of anticipation and priority. ¡°How¡¯s Seren?¡± Mrs. Stone thought about her niece, who was not pregnant yet. Jasmine had gotten pregnant during her honeymoon. Mrs. Stone was worried her niece would be upset Elisa recalled Serenity¡¯s reaction. She said, ¡°She looked normal. You don¡¯t have to worry about her, Mom. She has an open mind now and is going with the flow. She¡¯s no longer in a rush to get pregnant. ¡°Besides, we¡¯re so busy. She doesn¡¯t have the time and effort to think about having a child.¡± In the past, Serenity only had to watch over Elisa and Jasmine¡¯s bookstore. Getting pregnant was always on her mind because she had too much time. It was right that staying home and doing nothing would make someone overthink. It would be best to get something to do to distract oneself and even earn some money. Women could still earn money after marriage. It would also give them some confidence to face their inws. Elisa came to that conclusion through Liberty¡¯s marriage. No matter how much money a man earned, it was best that women had financial independence and never believed men when they said they would take care of them. Men would get tired of it after some time. Every time a woman asked a man for money, the man would go from being willing to nagging. rolling their eyes, and then scolding. In the end, they would refuse to give the money¡­ Of course, not all men would be like Hank. Kind people still upied arger portion of the world¡¯s poption. ¡°You¡¯re together with Seren almost every day. If you notice she has something on her mind, try to talk to her more.¡± ¡°I know. Don¡¯t worry, Mom. Seren is my sister. I care for her more than anyone and want her to be happy too. If Zachary dares mistreat her, I¡¯ll even go to his ce to pick a fight.¡± ¡°You¡¯ll pick a fight?¡± Mrs. Stone¡¯s tone became stern. Elisa quickly rephrased her words. ¡°I¡¯ll go to his ce and demand justice for Serenity. I won¡¯t use fists. Mm, I¡¯m an elegantdy. I¡¯ll use words and not my fists.¡± my Well, she could still use her feet and vent her anger by kicking Zachary several times. ¡°Are you still at the Buchams¡® house now?¡± Mrs. Stone did not know what to do with her daughter. She knew what was going on in her daughter¡¯s mind. Other people used their mouths and not fists while her daughter would use her fists instead of words whenever possible. Otherwise, why would her reputation in Wiltspoon be so terrible? ¡°I just left their house. What¡¯s the matter, Mom?¡± ¡°Come to our family¡¯s hotel now. I invited Mr. Reading over for a meal. You shoulde over and eat with us too. He helped me so many times. As my children, you guys can treat Mr. Reading to a meal to repay his kindness in my stead.¡°. Elisa said, ¡°Mom, Mr. Reading had refused thest time I treated him to a meal. He said it was a small matter and that we didn¡¯t have to be so polite about it.¡± ¡°Mr. Reading helped me twice again recently. I called him personally to treat him to a meal. He agreed to it. Come over quickly. He¡¯ll be here soon.¡± Elisa asked, ¡°Is it just you and me?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°It¡¯ll be the three of us after Mr. Readinges.¡± ¡°Are Dad, Clive, and the others noting?¡± Elisa btedly realized that her mother seemed to want her to interact with Mr. Reading more. Did Remy¡¯s courting make Mom anxious that she was getting a man for her? After seeing through her mother¡¯s ns, Elisa did not know whether tough or cry. ¡°Your dad¡¯s going out to meet a friendter in the evening. Clive has a business engagement, while Anthony neveres home unless the sky is falling. Who can I count on? You¡¯re my precious baby daughter. I can only count on you.¡± Elisa was speechless. If so, she had to apany her mother to have a meal with Mr. Reading. Otherwise, she would not be her mother¡¯s precious baby anymore. Chapter 1639 Chapter 1639 Chapter 1639 ¡°Mom, I¡¯m at our family¡¯s hotel now. I¡¯m in private room number 23.¡± Elisa had no choice but to tell her mother that she was at the hotel already. After a moment of silence, Mrs. Stone asked, ¡°Are you eating with Mr. Johnson?¡± ¡°Yes,¡± Elisa answered honestly. Her family disapproved of her being together with Remy, but she did not listen to them. She felt happy when she was with him. Happiness was the most important aspect of living. If being with Remy made her happy, why would she not date him? ¡°We just arrived and haven¡¯t ordered anything. Why don¡¯t Remy and I go over to apany you and Mr. Reading to have dinner?¡± Mrs. Stone pressed her lips together. She said, ¡°I¡¯ll go over to you.¡± She hung up right after. Elisa held her phone and looked toward Remy. She said, ¡°My mom wants to treat Mr. Reading to a meal. She wants us to apany them. She¡¯ll being over soon, so let¡¯s not order first.¡± Elisa knew what signature dishes her family¡¯s hotel had. Remy smiled. ¡°Okay.¡± He knew Mrs. Stone would annoy and stress him out. Mr. Reading was the love rival Mrs. Stone created for him. Although the Readings always kept a low profile, it was Tania Reading¡¯s family. Andrew and Zachary were cousins too. The Readings and Stones had equal social status as well. To be chosen and arranged to be set up with Elisa by Mrs. Stone personally, it was evident that Andrew was an outstanding man. Seeing Remy agreeing so readily, Elisa wanted to say something but hesitated. ¡°Elisa, you can say what¡¯s on your mind,¡± Remy said considerately. ¡°Based on my mom¡¯s arrangement, I think she wants to bring Mr. Reading and I together. I didn¡¯t notice it the first time. No wonder my mom kept praising him in front of me. I just realized my mom¡¯s intentions just now.¡± Remy continued speaking gently, ¡°I know. I felt it the first time I saw Mr. Reading and heard Mrs. Stone complimenting him so much.¡± Therefore, he even called Zachary on purpose to ask for Andrew¡¯s rtionship status. He confirmed that Andrew was single and did not have a girlfriend. Zacharyughed at him for treating everyone like an enemy. Remy thought he would rather treat everyone like enemies than leave out any potential rival. He could not gain the Stones¡® recognition. Although Elisa was headstrong sometimes and had her own opinions, she was still a filial child. If Mrs. Stone insisted that Elisa try dating Andrew, she would probably give in. That was why Remy immediately treated Andrew as a love rival after he spotted Elisa seeing Andrew off. Zachary was lucky to have Grandma May arranging everything for him. He immediately got his marriage license and did not experience someone fighting for his wife. He could not understand why Remy was nervous. Elisa was speechless. The first time Remy met Andrew was that time she saw Andrew off. She remembered that Remy never even talked to Andrew. Despite that, he treated Andrew as a love rival. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Elisa, no matter how many people are courting you, I¡¯ll never give up. It¡¯s a fairpetition for everything. This shows that you¡¯re a nicedy too.¡± Remy felt pressured, but he did not show it in his expressions. Instead, he consoled Elisa not to be stressed about it. He trusted his instinct and eye for people. Chapter 1640 Chapter 1640 Chapter 1640 Elisa had feelings for Remy. As she mentioned, she was not in a rush to agree to date him because she wanted to experience being pursued and cherished by someone. Elisa smiled and said, ¡°Mr. Reading might not fancy me anyway. It¡¯s all my mom¡¯s doing. If I don¡¯t cooperate, my mom¡¯s actions will be useless. I can still decide who I love.¡± Andrew was Zachary¡¯s cousin. Although she had never interacted with Andrew before, he must have known that she used to be obsessed with Zachary. Even if she had already given up on Zachary and let go of her feelings for him, could Andrew really not mind? Her mother was simply wasting efforts. She would not cooperate, and Andrew would not fall for it. Elisa¡¯s words were like a tranquilizer. They put Remy¡¯s mind at ease. He considered himself lucky that he had targeted Elisa early and deliberately approached her. He had made a strong first impression, upied the most advantageous position, and developed feelings for her. If he had just made his move, he probably could not beat Andrew. Mrs. Stone arrived shortly. ¡°Mrs. Stone.¡± Upon seeing her entering, Remy immediately stood up to greet her with a wide smile on his handsome face. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Mrs. Stone used to think of him as gentle and well¨Cmannered because he was always smiling whenever she saw him. Seeing his smile at that moment, she felt he was a cunning fox. He even smiled like one. However, Mrs. Stone never thought Remy was a gentle and kind person. To be appointed by Ben to alone manage FC & Co.¡¯s branchpany in Wiltspoon, expanding it, and increasing the headquarters¡® investment in the Wiltspoon branch had all proven that Remy was a formidable man. Of course, he was not an evil man. He was just not as kind¨Chearted as everyone imagined. How could people in the business world, especially those who were sessful, not have some ruthless tricks up their sleeves? ¡°Mm.¡± Mrs. Stone did not like seeing Remy, but she still had manners. She returned a hum in response to his greeting. After settling down, she said to her daughter, who was about to sit, ¡°Elisa, Mr. Reading will be here soon. Go to the hotel¡¯s entrance and wait for him. He rarelyes to our hotel. I¡¯m afraid he might not be able to find his way here.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll fetch Mr. Reading.¡± Remy wanted to do it. Mrs. Stone said indifferently, ¡°Sit down, Mr. Johnson. Mr. Reading is my guest. He should be received by someone from the Stone family. How can we trouble you to wee him?¡± She meant that it was the Stone family¡¯s business. Remy was an outsider who should not intervene. Elisa had no choice but to say, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for Mr. Reading outside the hotel, Mom.¡± As the Readings and the Yorks were rted by marriage, they would usually spend their money at Wiltspoon Hotel and not the Yorks¡® rival hotel. Mrs. Stone used it as an excuse to have Elisa wait for Andrew. After winking at Remy, she obediently went to wait for Andrew outside the hotel. Once Elisa left, Mrs. Stone told Remy, ¡°Mr. Johnson, I believe you¡¯re aware of my family¡¯s opinion. It¡¯s useless even if you persist. I disapprove of this rtionship, and it¡¯s final. There are plenty more fish in the sea. Why do you have to insist on having my Elisa? ¡°There are many more nice women out there, be it in Annenburg or Wiltspoon. As long as you pay attention to them, you¡¯ll realize that they¡¯re more suited for you than Elisa. ¡°I¡¯ve spoiled her rotten since she was young. She¡¯s wayward, reckless, and hot¨Ctempered. She¡¯ll revolt if anything doesn¡¯t go her way. I think she doesn¡¯t suit you, Mr. Johnson.¡± In order to make Remy give up, Mrs. Stone did not hesitate to utilize outsiders¡®ments about Elisa. Remy said nicely, ¡°Mrs. Stone, you won¡¯t listen no matter what I say now. Time shall prove to you whether I¡¯m suitable for Elisa or not.¡± Chapter 1641 Chapter 1641 Chapter 1641 ¡°I don¡¯t think Elisa is wayward, reckless, or hot¨Ctempered. Who doesn¡¯t have a temper? Even a figurine made of y has some expressions. ¡°Even if Elisa acts as you described her, I have a good temper and am tolerant. I¡¯m best suited for someone with a temper like Elisa¡¯s.¡± Mrs. Stone could not retort at all. Remy was indeed a good¨Ctempered person. He was tolerant too. ¡°Mrs. Stone, aside from the fact that I¡¯m not from Wiltspoon, what else are you unsatisfied with? I can correct them.¡± Since Mrs. Stone was straightforward, Remy asked her that question frankly too. ¡°You¡¯re great in everything and outstanding. I started admiring you even before you started pursuing my daughter. As I mentioned before, I only have one daughter. I can¡¯t bear her marrying someone who lives far away. Since you and my daughter have just started dating, it¡¯s not toote. to end the rtionship. You won¡¯t hurt each other.¡± ¡°I¡¯m working in Wiltspoon long¨Cterm, and I live here. Nearly all my friends are in Wiltspoon, and the new house I bought is beside your family¡¯s. My registered residence isn¡¯t in Wiltspoon, but aside from that, I¡¯m no different from a Wiltspoonian, Mrs. Stone. ¡°I can change my registered residence to Wiltspoon for Elisa too.¡± Mrs. Stone stayed silent. Elisa used to love Zachary stubbornly. Actually, she inherited her stubbornness from her mother. Mrs. Stone was stubborn about some issues too. She would insist on her opinions no matter how much others persuaded or talked to her. She was acting this way recently. No matter what Remy did or promised, she would not agree to her daughter marrying him. Beep¡­ Remy received a new Whatsapp message. He took his phone and tapped Whatsapp to have a look. It was Elisa who sent him the message. She asked him if her mother was being hard on him and requested him not to resent her mother for her sake if her mother was doing so. Remy¡¯s gaze was filled with softness. He had already treated Mrs. Stone as his mother¨Cinw. How could he possibly hate his future mother¨Cinw? It was he who was not doing enough and better. Mrs. Stone refused to approve because he could not give her enough security.. Simply speaking, he still had to work harder. Courting a wife was not easy. He would treasure Elisa more after sessfully getting her. Remy replied to Elisa¡¯s message: [Mrs. Stone isn¡¯t hard on me. Don¡¯t worry.] Elisa received Remy¡¯s reply. She felt assured after thinking her mother was still reasonable, albeit a little aggressive. She waited for Andrew at the entrance of the hotel. Luckily, he did not make her wait long and arrived after a short while. Andrew spotted Elisa at the entrance once he reached. He found a parking bay and parked his car. Surprisingly, Elisa was already standing in front of his car after he got down. She smiled at him and said, ¡°Good evening, Mr. Reading.¡± Andrew¡¯s eyes gleamed. The feistydy seemed to have changed a lot. In the past, Elisa was arrogant. Aside from his cousin Zachary, everything else was worthless in her eyes. She had be elegant, proper, and mild¨Cmannered. Andrew had already felt Elisa¡¯s transformation when he had previously seen her at the Stone family¡¯s house. She was not as difficult to get along with as the rumors described. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Of course, he did not think the outsiders¡®ments about Elisa were true. Elisa came from a wealthy family. Even if she were arrogant, she had the right to be. Many people who were inferior to her were envious of it. Among those whomented, there must have been quite a number of people tarnishing Elisa¡¯s reputation on purpose. However, Elisa was not one to care about her reputation. She did things. her way and was headstrong. As time passed, her reputation in the social circle became terrible. Andrew found the current Elisa extremely charming. It was different from her previous mboyant beauty. Maybe it was because his opinions of her had changed. Chapter 1642 Chapter 1642 Chapter 1642 When admiring someone, all of that person¡¯s shorings would turn into strong points. On the other hand, hating someone would cause even that person¡¯s strengths to turn into ws. ¡°Good evening, Ms. Stone.¡± Andrew returned Elisa¡¯s greeting with a smile. He looked behind Elisa. There was no sign of Mrs. Stone. It was Mrs. Stone who had invited him over for a meal. He thought she would be present. Mrs. Stone was being too polite. He stopped his car to ask her what had happened simply because he saw her sitting on the floor. He also drove her home afterward. It was a slight effort. and no big deal to him. However, she treated Andrew like her life savior. Her excessive enthusiasm and gratitude made him feel pressured. Elisa had also called him countless times to treat him to a meal and repay his kindness. He refused all of them politely. However, Mrs. Stone invited him repeatedly that day. Andrew only agreed to the dinner to regain his peace and quiet. He thought Mrs. Stone would not bother him anymore after having one meal together and letting her feel like she had repaid his kindness. ¡°My mom is waiting for you in a private room, Mr. Reading,¡± Elisa exined.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Andrew let out a breath of relief. It was fine as long as he was not having a meal with Elisa alone. Although he thought Elisa had changed a lot, he did not want to eat with her alone. He feared the paparazzi would take pictures and create a scandal that would be a trending topic. His identity in Wiltspoon was overly sensitive. As the nephew of the York family¡¯s head missus and Zachary¡¯s cousin, his scandal would easily top the trending charts. The Readings kept an extremely low profile. He did not wish to be the first Reading to be a trending headline. ¡°After you, Mr. Reading.¡± Elisa invited Andrew into the hotel. He nodded politely and went into the hotel with her. They soon reached the private room. Elisa opened the door and gestured for Andrew to enter. Once he went inside and saw that Mrs. Stone and Remy were present, he rxed immediately. ¡°Mrs. Stone, Mr. Johnson,¡± Andrew greeted. Remy stood up to wee him and gestured for him to sit. Mrs. Stone also greeted Andrew with a smile. She was exceptionally friendly to him. Andrew chose to sit beside Remy. After sitting, he grinned and said to Mrs. Stone, ¡°You¡¯re too kind, Mrs. Stone. It was no trouble at all.¡± ¡°It was no trouble to you, but you saved me. I¡¯m indebted to you. I¡¯ve always separated gratitude. and grudges clearly. I¡¯ll repay the kindnesses I¡¯ve received and take revenge on those who¡¯ve wronged me. Don¡¯t be too formal with me in the future, Andrew. If you don¡¯t give me a chance to repay you, I won¡¯t even be able to eat in peace.¡± The Stones and the Yorks could be considered rtives. It would be normal for the Stones to interact with the Reading family. Mrs. Stone was looking at Andrew as a mother¨Cinw would her son¨Cinw. She got fonder of him the more she looked at him. Unfortunately, her precious daughter could not understand her painstaking efforts. ¡°I¡¯m here now, Mrs. Stone. I wasn¡¯t being modest. I was really busy,¡± Andrew defended himself a little. He could not admit it even though he had rejected them on purpose. ¡°You still have to eat no matter how busy you are. After eating here this time, you cane over to our house for a meal the next time. I¡¯ll personally cook some of my signature dishes for you to have a taste.¡± Mrs. Stone looked toward Elisa and said to Andrew, ¡°The soup Elisa makes is extremely delicious. I¡¯ll have her cook some for you when that timees.¡± When Elisa wooed Zachary in the past, she often made breakfast and soup filled with love for him. It had refined her skills in making tasty soups. Chapter 1643 Chapter 1643 Chapter 1643 After ncing at Elisa, Andrew said with a smile, The soup Ms. Stone makes will definitely taste. good. However, I don¡¯t really like drinking soup.¡± Elisa had sent soup over frequently back when she was pursuing his cousin. Andrew was aware of it. Mrs. Stone maintained her smile and said, ¡°You haven¡¯t tried the soup Elisa makes. You¡¯ll like it after tasting it. It¡¯s decided then. Pleasee to our house for a meal next time.¡± Andrew grinned. ¡°I¡¯ll definitely go if I have the time Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Only then did Mrs. Stone feel satisfied and stop her attacks. She asked Elisa to order the food. Elisa had the waiter bring the menu. She passed one to Andrew, ¡°You can do the honor, Mr. Reading.¡± Andrew smiled. ¡°This is the Stone family¡¯s hotel. You must be aware of which dish tastes great. You should order, Ms. Stone. I¡¯m not a picky eater aside from disliking soup.¡± Actually, he liked drinking soup. Wiltspoonians loved boiling soup. Some people could not even eat without having soup for each meal. Andrew only said he disliked soup to prevent Mrs. Stone from making Elisa cook for him. ¡°I¡¯ll just order a few dishes then.¡± After ordering her family hotel¡¯s signature dishes, Elisa also ordered soup. During the meal, Mrs. Stone was being overly enthusiastic toward Mr. Reading. She kept asking him to get more food. However, she never once mentioned Remy, who was beside Andrew. It formed a stark contrast. Remy was good¨Ctempered and patient. He knew that Mrs. Stone was acting like that on purpose to make him back out. How could he back out voluntarily after finally falling in love with a woman? Not to mention that Andrew did not seem interested in Elisa. Even if he got attracted to her in the end, Remy was still confident that he could beat him. As long as Elisa had feelings for him, any hardships could be ovee. That meal felt like a dangerous feast. After the meal, Andrew left with the excuse that he still had matters to attend to. ¡°Elisa, please see Mr. Reading off,¡± Mrs. Stone instructed. Andrew quickly said, ¡°Mr. Johnson and I clicked with each other, and we wish to have a chat. Having Mr. Johnson see me off is enough, Mrs. Stone.¡± ¡°Mr. Johnson is a guest too.¡± Mrs. Stone¡¯s words had excluded Remy from being a part of the Stone family. Remy was indeed still not a part of her family. She wished for it to stay that way in the future too. ¡°I¡¯ll see Mr. Reading off with Elisa, Mrs. Stone.¡± Remy thought of apromise. Mrs. Stone pressed her lips together and did not say a word. In the end, Remy and Elisa saw Andrew off together. A few minutester, Andrew arrived at his car. He turned and said to them, ¡°I¡¯ll be leaving first, Mr. Johnson, Ms. Stone. Let¡¯s have a meal another day when we have time.¡± ¡°Okay. Goodbye, Mr. Reading.¡± Remy and Elisa waved Andrew goodbye. Andrew¡¯s car left shortly. Chapter 1644 Chapter 1644 Chapter 1644 When Remy and Elisa could no longer see Andrew¡¯s car, they prepared to return to the hotel. However, Mrs. Stone walked out of the hotel. ¡°Mrs. Stone,¡± Remy greeted. Mrs. Stone nodded as a form of acknowledgment. Then, she said to Elisa, ¡°Elisa, can you apany me to the night market? I haven¡¯t walked around one for a long time.¡± Elisa looked toward Remy. Remy read the atmosphere and said, ¡°Mrs. Stone, Elisa, I also have some matters to see to. I¡¯ll leave first.¡± Elisa whispered apologetically, ¡°Remy, please don¡¯t take what my mother did or said to heart.¡± Remy returned a gaze to reassure her. He was generous and would not resent his mother¨Cinw for being hard on him. Mrs. Stone walked toward her car. Elisa had no choice but to follow. They sat in the same car while Elisa¡¯s car was left in the parking lot of their hotel. When Elisa got into the car, Mrs. Stone poked her forehead. She told Elisa, ¡°How many times have. I told you to keep a distance from Remy? He¡¯s a cunning fox. You won¡¯t even know if he¡¯s scamming you. ¡°Even if he sells you away, you might still be counting money for him. ¡°He¡¯s not suitable for you. You should end things while your feelings aren¡¯t that deep yet.¡± Elisa said unhappily, ¡°Mom, I¡¯ve only liked two guys my whole life, yet you never supported me for either. I used to like Zachary, and you said he didn¡¯t suit me too. You talked about the Yorks being the Stones¡® rival, how our families don¡¯t get along, and that I was asking for trouble if I liked him. ¡°Fine. I gave up after Zachary and Seren got married. I finally got along well with Remy and started dating him. I feel rxed. I don¡¯t care whether he¡¯s cunning or not. I only know that his feelings for me are sincere. ¡°If you keep opposing, I¡¯ll tell Remy I agree to be his girlfriend and reveal our rtionship to the public.¡± Elisa was aggrieved. She did not think she had a bad eye for men. Whether it was Zachary or Remy, they were both outstanding men. However, when she fancied the former, she could not gain her family¡¯s support. The same thing happened when she liked thetter. ¡°Mom, can you let me decide on my marriage myself? I don¡¯t like being led by the nose or walking the pathid out for me by you all. I won¡¯t agree to a political marriage unless the man I¡¯m getting. married to is someone I like.¡± Mrs. Stone red at her daughter. After some time, she said, ¡°Remy is too cunning. He seduced your heart unnoticed and unknowingly. Even I was tricked.¡± When Remy visited them back then, she did not expect him to target her precious daughter. She thought he simply wanted to get close to them as neighbors. FC & Co. had business dealings with York Corporation. Remy and Zachary had a good brotherly rtionship too. Thanks to Serenity, Elisa and Remy started interacting with each other more and got along well. Mrs. Stone did not overthink it then. She only noticed something was off after Remy had spent a lot of time with Elisa and often came over for meals. She med herself for being dense and not noticing Remy¡¯s ambitions before it was toote. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. She would have nipped Remy¡¯s feelings in the bud if she had known about it earlier. ¡°Elisa, Mr. Reading is a great man too. Don¡¯t put all your eggs into one basket. You must pick the strongest, tallest, and most luscious tree from the forest.¡± Mrs. Stone advised her, ¡°You¡¯ve met Mr. Reading too. Isn¡¯t he great? He¡¯s handsome, well- mannered, and has a good family background. He isn¡¯tckingpared to Remy. Most importantly, he¡¯s from Wiltspoon. It¡¯s convenient for you toe home in the future if you¡¯re with him. ¡°If you ever get bullied in your inws¡® ce, we can seek justice for you anytime. However, the Readings¡® family culture has always been excellent so you don¡¯t have to worry about your inws bullying you.¡± If the Readings¡® family culture were bad, Tania would not have married into the York family and be the head missus. Although Grandma May seemed to have picked her granddaughters¨Cinw randomly, she actually prioritized character a lot. Chapter 1645 Chapter 1645 Chapter 1645 ¡°Will you and my brothers not seek justice if I were together with Remy and got bullied by the Johnsons?¡± Elisa returned a question to her mother. ¡°Besides, I¡¯m not someone who¡¯s easily bullied. It has always been me bullying other people.¡± Mrs. Stone choked for a moment and said, ¡°You can act recklessly in Wiltspoon, and no one will dare to do anything to you. That¡¯s because you have the huge Stone Group behind your back. Clive can back you up and clean up your mess. ¡°If you were to be with Remy, you¡¯d live in Annenburg. Who¡¯ll dote on you and be your shoulder to rely on if you move to a faraway ce after marriage?¡± Elisa argued her case. ¡°Remy¡¯s job is based in Wiltspoon, and he lives here long¨Cterm. I¡¯ll be living in Wiltspoon in the future with him as well. Even if we must return to Annenburg, it¡¯ll only be during the festive seasons to apany his parents. ¡°What trouble can arise from that? Besides, you¡¯re aware of what type of family the Johnsons are. The Johnsons are open¨Cminded. They won¡¯t bully their daughter¨Cinw.¡± Mrs. Stone said, ¡°Which of the Johnsons¡® daughters¨Cinw are easy to deal with? All of them have people backing them.¡± The eldest Johnson missus was a Lafayette from Meadspring while the second was an heiress of a wealthy family. The fourth was most likely the genius doctor¡¯s student. All of them could not be offended. ¡°Don¡¯t I have a backing as well? Is Stone Group not going to be my backing if I get married and move to a faraway ce? When I return, will the doors of the Stones¡® house not open for me anymore?¡± Mrs. Stone was reduced to silence by her daughter¡¯s retorts but also furious. ¡°If you¡¯re worried about me marrying into a family like the Johnsons, I think you can just make me stay by your side and be an unmarried woman forever. Don¡¯t evenin about me not getting married despite reaching thirty years old in the future.¡± Mrs. Stone was speechless. ¡°You little brat. Can¡¯t you be considerate of how much I¡¯ll miss you? Everything I said boils down to one point. I can¡¯t bear you moving to somewhere far after getting married. I only have one daughter. If you marry someone who lives far away, I¡¯ll have to sit in the airne for several hours whenever I want to meet you.¡± ¡°Remy¡¯s new house is just beside ours. You won¡¯t have to take a few¨Chour flight. You can meet me in just two to three minutes of walking. I can even go home and have meals with you every day. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Mrs. Stone said, ¡°Remy will eventually have to return to Annenburg.¡± ¡°It¡¯s normal to return for some time during festive seasons. You can¡¯t possibly refuse to let me visit the Johnsons for my entire life, right? Even if I marry someone from Wiltspoon, I¡¯ll still live with my inws most of the time after marriage. If so, isn¡¯t it better if I get married to Remy? We can even be neighbors. ¡°I¡¯ll be able toe over to eat as soon as you start cooking. How convenient is that? ¡°My sister¨Cinw married into a family that¡¯s close enough, right? However, doesn¡¯t Clive have to apany Alice back to her home every festive season? The same logic applies. If I get married to Remy and be the Johnsons¡® daughter¨Cinw, shouldn¡¯t I apany my husband back to visit his family during the holidays?¡± Mrs. Stone was rendered speechless. ¡°Driver, stop the car!¡± Mrs. Stone suddenly ordered the driver to stop. He quickly drove to the side and stopped the car. ¡°Get down, Elisa.¡± Mrs. Stone told her daughter to get out of the car. Elisa was stunned. Was she being chased off the car by her mother? Did her mother chase her away because her arguments were too aggressive and had made her mother speechless? ¡°Mom.¡± ¡°Get off. I don¡¯t need you apanying me anymore.¡± Elisa saw her mother¡¯s firm attitude. After pressing her lips together, she softened her tone and said, ¡°Mom, if anything I said just now happened to hurt you, I apologize. Don¡¯t be angry, Mom. I know you¡¯re only doing this for my own good.¡± Her parents and brothers have loved her ever since she was young. She was the most spoiled child in the family. Her parents¡® and brothers¡® kindness toward her was definitely sincere. She never doubted it. Chapter 1646 Chapter 1646 Chapter 1646 However, how Elisa¡¯s parents treated her might not be what she wanted at times. Upon noticing that her mother was quiet, Elisa had no choice but to get out of the car. The moment she did, Mrs. Stone ordered the chauffeur to resume driving. Slightly dazed, the chauffeur turned his head and looked at Mrs. Stone before he said, ¡°Madam, Ms. Stone¡­¡± ¡°Since she has legs, she can go home on her own. Mrs. Stone said indifferently, ¡°If she was still in the car, the two of us would definitely have a zing row.¡± By kicking her daughter out of the car, Mrs. Stone believed that it would allow the two of them to calm down. It did not trouble her in the slightest whether her daughter could reach home. Feeling helpless, the chauffeur had no choice but to continue driving. Elisa stood by the roadside, watching her mother¡¯s car leave and soon blend in with the traffic. ¡®My mom actually abandoned me.¡® Not knowing whether tough or cry, Elisa felt aggrieved. She did not bother to return to the hotel to drive, so she hailed a cab. After getting into the cab, she told the driver Serenity¡¯s house address. She wanted to pour her heart out to Serenity. Coincidentally, Andrew was in Zachary¡¯s vi before Elisa came. Andrew and Zachary had a close rtionship, but both of them barely showed up in public together. Andrew was concerned that others would see him as trying to take advantage of Zachary because of Zachary¡¯s poprity. Zachary and Serenity had just finished their meals. They were strolling along hand in hand in their courtyard. It was only when Andrew came that the two of them returned to their house. Just as Andrew was invited into the house, the butler came in and said to Serenity, ¡°Missus, Ms. Stone is here. She came here by cab.¡± Serenity¡¯s pretty eyes sparkled with surprise. ¡°Where¡¯s Elisa¡¯s car?¡± A thought urred to Serenity, and she promptly leaped to her feet. While walking out, she asked, ¡°Could something have happened to her?¡± An ident¨Cthe first thing that came to Serenity¡¯s mind. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. It was only when Elisa met with an ident that she would not drive. As soon as Andrew heard that Elisa was here, he was on pins and needles. Initially, Zachary wanted to go out and take a look, but he noticed the awkward expression of his cousin. He discarded the idea of going out for the time being and asked Andrew concernedly, ¡°Andrew, are you okay? Is my couch prickly? Why do you look like the seat is causing you difort?¡± ¡°No. I¡¯m fine. Well¡­ Zack, why did Elisae over? I came here to meet you just to talk about Elisa. It turned out that she came right after me.¡± This was coincidence and fate. Zachary said, ¡°What happened between you and Elisa? She¡¯s Seren¡¯s cousin and good friend, so she comes over from time to time.¡± ¡°There¡¯s nothing between us. I¡¯ve helped Mrs. Stone a few times, and she seemed to¡­ Zack, I don¡¯t know if I¡¯m overthinking it, but I think Mrs. Stone has been overly enthusiastic and nice to me. The way she looks at me is creepy. That¡¯s how a woman looks at her son¨Cinw.¡± Zacharyughed. ¡°Great. In just a short while, Mrs. Stone has already considered you her son¨Cin-w. Andrew, you¡¯re d*mn awesome.¡± Andrew was helpless. ¡°Zack, stop mocking me. I think Elisa has changed a bit. She¡¯s different from before. I think she¡¯s beautiful. If¡­ But I don¡¯t like being tricked or led by the nose.¡± This meant that if he was fond of Elisa, he would go after her of his own ord. He did not want Mrs. Stone to lead him by the nose. Chapter 1647 Chapter 1647 Chapter 1647 Andrew¡¯s words caused Zachary to keep a straight face. Zachary stopped mocking his cousin and stared at him solemnly. He asked, ¡°Andrew, are you really in love with Elisa?¡± ¡°No such thing.¡± Andrew promptly denied it. ¡°It was only tonight that I was aware of Mrs. Stone¡¯s motive. There were several times she met. with idents on the road, then I bumped into her and sent her home. Now, I suspect that those were her plots.¡± Andrew was no fool. After realizing Mrs. Stone¡¯s motive, he analyzed it and felt that it was Mrs. Stone¡¯s plot to change meetings with him. Mr. and Mrs. Stone had a great rtionship. After they retired, Mr. Stone would follow Mrs. Stone wherever she went. Nevertheless, Mr. Stone did not tag along when Mrs. Stone strolled around. Also, it happened that Mrs. Stone did not carry her phone along when she sprained her ankle. How could there possibly be so many coincidences? ¡°Zack, I know Elisa used to love you and went after you publicly. I won¡¯t get into a rtionship with her because I think¡­ it¡¯s not good.¡± Zachary said, ¡°That¡¯s not the point. She used to love me, but I never got together with her. After knowing that I¡¯m married, she stopped pestering me. She¡¯s very rational when ites to rtionships. Most importantly, the person she likes now is Remy, the Johnsons¡® fifth young master ¡°Even though Elisa and Remy haven¡¯t made their rtionship public, it¡¯s obvious that they get along very well. The two of them are stubborn in rtionships. If you meddle with their rtionship, you¡¯ll lose out and get hurt.¡± It was not because Zachary found Andrew unsuitable for Elisa, nor was it because he opposed Andrew getting together with Elisa. Andrew could fancy Elisa provided that she was single. Now that Elisa was in a rtionship, Zachary was against his cousin getting together with Elisa Zachary did not want his cousin to be hurt as Elisa did because of him back then. ¡°Zack, I didn¡¯t say I like Elisa. I see that Remy and Elisa are together. Thankfully, Remy was there during the meal tonight, or I would¡¯ve felt uneasy.¡± With Remy around during dinner, Andrew could have a chat with him. He did not need to face Mrs. Stone and Elisa alone. ¡°I could tell that Elisa was unaware of it at first, but she¡¯s clever Later, she seemed to have realized her mom¡¯s motive. She was polite to me, but she had no motive ¡°It¡¯s good that you realize it. Elisa might be headstrong sometimes, but she has a great worldview ?? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ??????? As long as both of you don¡¯t show interest in each other, Mrs. Stone won¡¯t be able to do anything. about it.¡± After some thought, Andrew agreed and heaved a sigh of relief. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. At that moment, Liberty brought Elisa in. While walking, Elisa was grumbling, ¡°I just argued with my mom. I was telling the truth, and she kicked me out of the car only because she failed to win. against me! ¡°Seren, your aunt kicked me out of the car, but I¡¯m her daughter. She always said that she loved me the most among her three children and that I was the apple of her eye. She ended up kicking me out of the car! ¡°Fortunately, I was able to hail a cab. If she had booted me out in a remote ce, what could I do?¡± Being kicked out of the car by her mother came as a blow to Elisa. Through Elisa¡¯s grumblings, Seren had a general idea of what was going on. ¡°I¡¯m not going home tonight, Seren. You can arrange a guest room for me, and I¡¯ll stay here for a night. Or you can lend me a car so I can return to my house and stay there for a few days. I¡¯m not. going home since my mom kicked me out¡­¡± ¡°Seren.¡± Elisa suddenly stopped in her tracks and turned her gaze to the two men on the couch. She whispered, ¡°Andrew is here. Why didn¡¯t you let me know that he¡¯s here?¡± Serenity answered innocently, ¡°You kept talking the minute you got out of the cab. I didn¡¯t have the chance to cut in. How could I let you know? It¡¯s fine that Andrew is around since he came to meet his cousin, not you.¡± Elisa asked, ¡°Both of them didn¡¯t hear what I said just now, did they?¡± ¡°I guess not.¡± They were a bit far from Elisa. Only then, along with Serenity, did Elisa calmly walk up to the two men. ¡°Zack, Mr. Reading.¡± Chapter 1648 Chapter 1648 Chapter 1648 Elisa greeted Zachary and Andrew. When Zachary heard Elisa greet him, his lips twitched. Given that Serenity was one year younger than Elisa, she was Elisa¡¯s younger cousin. ¡°Ms. Stone.¡± Andrew behaved normally. Elisa¡¯s and Andrew¡¯s eyes met. At the same time, they thought, ¡®What a coincidence!¡± The two of them came over spontaneously. ¡°Didn¡¯t Remy apany you here, Ms. Stone?¡± Andrew asked Elisa with a smile. Elisa responded, ¡°He has something to attend to, so I asked him to carry on with his work. He¡¯s going back to Annenburg a few dayster as his eldest sister¨Cinw is due to give birth.¡± Andrew hummed in acknowledgment. Serenity added, ¡°Jane¡¯s estimated due date hasn¡¯t arrived, has it? Yet she¡¯s due so soon.¡± ¡°That¡¯s what Remy said. I¡¯m not sure either ¡°But Jane is pregnant with twins. I heard twins are usually delivered in advance.¡± Serenity admired Jane who was going to give birth soon.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Indeed, Jane had it all. Jane and Serenity were both the eldest missus of their families. To many, Serenity had it all as well. Serenity felt that she paled inparison with Jane. Until now, she was still not pregnant. Even Jasmine who got marriedter than Serenity had be pregnant and nothing happened to Serenity. Luckily, Serenity¡¯s husband and mother¨Cinw were nice. They did not pressure her. However, whenever she was free or heard that someone was going to give birth soon, she would feel dejected.¡± ¡°Babe, should we prepare two sets of baby clothes? After Jane delivers her babies, we must attend the sip and see shower We need to get the gifts in advance. ¡°When I talked to Jane, I told her I wanted to be the babies¡® godmother.¡± Jane¡¯s babies had a number of godmothers. Jane¡¯s friends were all eager to be her babies¡® godmothers. The eldest young missus of the Ormonds was definitely one of the godmothers. She wanted to be the godmother to Jane¡¯s babies even though she was due to give birth soon. ¡°Buy a few more sets of new clothes I can ask Nanater what I should prepare for the sip and see shower¡± Zachary said gently, ¡°Jane hasn¡¯t even given birth. It¡¯s too early to talk about the sip and see shower. You don¡¯t have to worry. It won¡¯t take a long time to make preparations.¡± He could easily get things settled. ¡°I want to be the babies¡® godmother too, but I¡¯m not close to Jane.¡± Elisa broke in. Serenity looked at her and said with a smile, ¡°You don¡¯t need to be their godmother.¡± Elisa could only be an aunt to Jane¡¯s babies. She came to her senses and grasped the point. If she got together with Remy, she would be the babies¡® aunt. She felt a bit shy and a blush creeping up her face. Chapter 1649 Chapter 1649 Chapter 1649 Andrew looked at Elisa who was different from what rumors had said about her. Not wanting to stay any longer, he stood up and was going to take his leave. ¡°Zack, Serenity, I¡¯m leaving now.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you stay for a little while? You can go back after supper.¡± Serenity tried to persuade Andrew to stay. Andrewughed and said, ¡°I don¡¯t usually have supper. After each supper, I need to spend a long time working out to maintain a good body shape. Serenity, I¡¯m single, so my image is important.¡± Serenity grinned. ¡°You¡¯re like your cousin. He doesn¡¯t want to have supper because he also wants to maintain his figure.¡± Since Andrew is insistent on leaving, Serenity stopped persuading him. She asked Zachary to walk his cousin out. ¡°Seren, can you lend me your car so I don¡¯t have to stay here overnight?¡± Upon her arrival at Serenity¡¯s house, Elisa impulsively wanted to stay there as she did not want to return home. However, she thought it would be better to borrow a car and stay in her own house for several days. She did not want to be a third wheel. ¡°Just stay here for one night.¡± ¡°Nope. Zachary appears to be okay with it but he¡¯ll pull a long face if I actually stay the night.¡± Zachary was a possessive man. Elisa felt that she should not offend him. ¡°If he dares sulk then I¡¯ll make him sleep in the study.¡± Elisa burst intoughter before she replied, ¡°I¡¯d better leave, then. If he ends up sleeping in the study because of me, I¡¯m afraid he¡¯ll forever pull a long face in front of me.¡± Serenity giggled, knowing that her husband was domineering. She generously took some car keys and ced them in front of Elisa. ¡°These are the few types of cars we have in the garage. You can pick any one of them.¡± Elisa casually took a car key and said, ¡°Any car is good enough. I¡¯m not picky.¡± After seeing his cousin off, Zachary returned and heard what Elisa said. Deep down, he was unhappy. All the cars in the garage were luxury cars. Elisa surely was not picky. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. if the vehicles in the garage were tractors instead, she would definitely be picky. Elisa left shortly. After she left, Zachary went upstairs while hugging his beloved wife. Once they entered their room, Serenity asked him, ¡°When Elisa came just now, what did Andrew tell you? Andrew came up with an excuse to leave as soon as she came.¡± ¡°Nothing much. Andrew and Elisa saw through Mrs. Stone¡¯s plots. Andrew came up with an excuse to leave only because he felt embarrassed.¡± Zachary sat down on the bed with his hands wrapped around Serenity. He could not help but press her down in less than two minutes. Serenity pushed him away. ¡°Take a bath. You haven¡¯t washed up. If you don¡¯t bathe on such a hot day, don¡¯t sleep on my bed.¡± ¡°It¡¯s hot outside, but it¡¯s not in the house.¡± Zachary domineeringly kissed her before letting her go. ¡°Mrs. Stone got Remy a love rival to make things difficult for him.¡± Serenity sat up. ¡°Remy has done his best, yet Aunt Audrey is still dissatisfied. Remy and Elisa are well¨Cmatched and have feelings for each other. Oh well, Aunt Audrey is dead set on going against their rtionship. Elisa fought back, only to get kicked out of the car by Aunt Audrey.¡± Zachary¡¯s hands were wrapped around her waist. ¡°Let¡¯s just watch the show without getting involved.¡± ¡°I know. When theye to pour their hearts out to me, I¡¯ll just lend an ear to them without having a hand in it. I¡¯ll be an onlooker.¡± The good show was to be continued. ¡°Hurry up and take a bath.¡± Serenity turned around and kissed him on the cheek. After she whispered to him, he happily went for a bath right away. Chapter 1650 Chapter 1650 Chapter 1650 Remy flew back to Annenburg the next afternoon. Two days after he returned to Anneburg, Jane gave birth to a pair of fraternal twins. Remy instantly phoned Elisa to share his joy with her. This was not his first time being an uncle but it was different this time. Previously, he became an uncle to his cousin¡¯s child. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. This time around, he was an uncle to his brother¡¯s children. When Elisa picked up his call, she was still staying in her house. She did not return to the Stones¡® residence. After Mrs. Stone found out from Serenity that Elisa was staying in her own house, she did not take the initiative to call Elisa. There was a deadlock between Mrs. Stone and Elisa. Seemingly, they gave each other the silent treatment. Mrs. Stone felt that she was right¨Cit was her daughter who was immature, unfilial, and disobedient. On the other hand, Elisa found her mother stubborn. Remy had gotten things squared away, yet Mrs. Stone remained resolute just because Remy was not a Wiltspoonian. ¡°The babies are born!¡± Elisa was delighted to hear from Remy that Jane had delivered her babies. She immediately wished him, ¡°Remy, congrattions. You¡¯re now an uncle.¡± ¡°Thank you. This time, I¡¯m an uncle to my brother¡¯s children, who are a pair of fraternal twins. Our family members are all overjoyed, especially my brother. He can¡¯t wait to celebrate it.¡± ¡°They¡¯re fraternal twins. How wonderful!¡± Elisa screamed before she said with a smile, ¡°I admire. your sister¨Cinw for giving birth to fraternal twins. The babies must be cute. Do you have photos of them? Send a few to me to have a look.¡± ¡°The babies are still in the incubators. I only saw them once. They¡¯re very small but cute. I took some photos, and I¡¯ll send them to youter. My mom said babies look different each day. Over time, they¡¯ll get cuter.¡± The two babies were born before the due date. Besides, they were fraternal twins. When they were born, they were not even six pounds each, and that was why they were still in the incubator. ¡°Congrats. This is wonderful. How I wish my sister¨Cinw could give birth to a pair of fraternal twins too. Oh, that¡¯s impossible. She¡¯s pregnant with a baby.¡± Elisa¡¯s sister¨Cinw¡¯s pregnancy was quite tormenting. Now, the baby was still troubling Alice. Elisa¡¯s niece or nephew was expected to be born at the end of this year or the beginning of next year Remy said with a smile, ¡°Many are pregnant with twins, but only a handful of them give birth to fraternal twins. I heard this has to do with gics. My sister¨Cinw and her brother are fraternal twins.¡± Elisa agreed. ¡°Your sister¨Cinw and Mr. Lafayette are fraternal twins. Now, your sister¨Cinw has given birth to a pair of fraternal twins herself.¡± She had also heard that it had to do with gics. ¡°Elisa.¡± ¡°If you have something to say, just say it.¡± Although Elisa and Remy were on the phone and unable to see each other, Elisa knew from his tone that he was biting his tongue at that moment. ¡°Now that I¡¯m not in Wiltspoon, did your mom try to make you go on a date with Mr. Reading?¡± Elisa purposely joked around. ¡°Yeah, we meet every day.¡± Remy stopped speaking on the other end of the line. Elisa thought he was mad, so she was about to tell him that she was lying. At that moment, he happened to say, ¡°I¡¯m catching a flight back to Wiltspoon this afternoon.¡± Knowing that his sister-inw and her babies were safe, and that he had met them, he could not fight the urge to stay any longer. He had to return to Wiltspoon to protect his woman! Elisaughed and said, ¡°I was kidding. I haven¡¯t met Mr. Reading since that night. It¡¯s been a few days.¡± Andrew was a clever person. Given that Mrs. Stone had made her intention so clear, how could he possibly not notice it? Andrew probably wished he could draw a clear boundary with Elisa and that he had never met her. Chapter 1651 Chapter 1651 Chapter 1651 ¡°I need to return to the office because there¡¯s a lot of work to address.¡± When letting out a sigh of relief, Remy decided to return to Wiltspoon in the afternoon. Having a lot of pending work was one of the reasons he wanted to return to Wiltspoon. However, the main reason was that being in Wiltspoon allowed him to protect Elisa easily. ¡°What time will you arrive? Do you want me to pick you up?¡± When Remy returned to Annenburg, he would usually take a private jet. It was only when his brothers used his family¡¯s private jet that he would book a flight ticket. Upon hearing that Elisa wanted to pick him up, he discarded the idea of taking a private jet. He said, ¡°After booking a flight ticket, I¡¯ll screenshot it for you.¡± ¡°Alright. Let¡¯s have dinner together.¡± Remy was pleased. ¡°Sure.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll carry on with my work first.¡± Remy said reluctantly, ¡°Okay. Take care and don¡¯t overwork yourself. Just let me know if you my help.¡± ¡°Alright. My investment has been going well so far need Serenity told Elisa that their market should not be limited to Wiltspoon. It had to be expanded to other regions. After some discussion, Serenity and Elisa nned to visit other neighboring cities to do a market survey. They wanted to find out if they could have a piece of the action in other territories. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Remy grinned before he said, ¡°Both of you are talented. Carry on with your work then. I¡¯ll see your tonight.¡± After ending the call, Remy shoved his phone back into his pocket and turned around smilingly. Just as he was ready to head to the inpatient ward, he saw his parentsing out. He walked up to them. ¡°Dad, Mom, are you leaving now?¡± ¡°Yes, we¡¯ll leave first. You can stay in the hospital to apany your brother if you want. Your sister¨C inw doesn¡¯t need us to look after her since your brother is doing everything on his own.¡± -Antonia Young beamed with pleasure. Antonia¡¯s eldest daughter¨Cinw did a great job in giving birth to a boy and a girl as her firstborns. From the moment Antonia learned that Jane was pregnant with fraternal twins, she had been grinning from ear to ear. Finally, Antonia had a granddaughter. Both she and her husband visited their daughter¨Cinw and the two babies in the hospital every day. 2/2 Mr. and Mrs. Lafayette, as well as the Murphys, came to the hospital several times a day. As mothers, Mrs. Lafayette and Fiona yton looked after Jane in the hospital with Ben. They were uneasy even though the Johnsons had arranged for a caregiver to look after Jane. ¡°I¡¯ll leave with both of you. I¡¯m going to book a flight back to Wiltspoon as there are too many things to take care of at work.¡± Remy was not going to enter the inpatient ward. Instead, he nned on leaving the hospital with his parents. Upon hearing that, Antonia asked Remy with confusion, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you¡¯d stay home for a longer time? Why did you suddenly want to return to the office? Is there something wrong at work?¡± FC & Co. was arge business in Wiltspoon. Although Antonia was not bothered about the business, she clearly knew how the business was going considering that she was thedy of FC Manor. If anything serious happened to his business in Wiltspoon, her eldest son would have to go on a business trip to settle it. ¡°Nothing serious. But there are many important things that I have to deal with. I¡¯m going to book my flight now and fly over this afternoon. I¡¯ll be back again to attend the babies¡® sip and see.¡± While walking, Antonia looked at her son and asked with a smirk, ¡°It¡¯s probably not something rted to thepany. It¡¯s because you miss Ms. Stone, right?¡± Antonia knew that Remy was interested in Elisa. Chapter 1652 Chapter 1652 Chapter 1652 Antonia knew that Remy had a target to go after, so she was not worried about his marriage. Remy barely talked to his parents about his love life. He normally shared it with his elder brother. It was through Ben that Antonia learned about it. She had seen Elisa¡¯s photo. Through Ben and Jane, she found out about Elisa¡¯s character. She was content with this youngdy of the Stones. Given that Remy had not sessfully pursued Elisa, Antonia felt that she should not randomly approach Elisa as it might frighten her. Remy¡¯s handsome face reddened. He answered honestly, ¡°Although I was physically at home over the last few days, my heart has been in Wiltspoon. He was thinking about Elisa all the time. He couldprehend the proverb ¡°absence makes the heart grow fonder¡°. Antonia guffawed and patted Remy¡¯s shoulder as if she was his buddy. ¡°All the best, Remy. I¡¯ll give you moral support. If you need me to help you with your ns, feel free to let me know. Just give. me a call, and I¡¯ll immediately fly over to help you go after your girlfriend.¡± ¡°Mom, am I that useless? I should go after my girlfriend on my own to prove my sincerity.¡± ¡°Right. You should do it on your own. Other people can¡¯t help you with this matter. If you don¡¯t have experience with it, you can ask your sister¨Cinw for tips. She used to write novels with her male leads being expert flirts. Her tips are definitely beneficial for you.¡± Remy said with a grin, ¡°I thought you¡¯d ask me to seek help from Ben.¡± ¡°You won¡¯t be able to follow Ben¡¯s path to love. He¡¯s extremely conniving. When your sister¨Cinw was thirteen, he was already targeting her. He had dealt with many of his love rivals before your sister¨Cin¨C law fell into his trap. ¡°He doesn¡¯t have any good ways of going after girls. You might as well seek help from Yves.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Yves had attempted to go after Iris, whereas Ben and Jane got married straight away. Ben did not go through the phase of pursuing Jane, so his experience could notpare with Yves¡¯s. Antonia and Remy were having a chat during their walk. Soon, they arrived at their car. Mr. Johnson silently opened the car door for his wife without chipping in. Remy found himself slightly conniving as well. After having feelings for Elisa, he started toe up with a scheme. When the Stones¡® neighbor wanted to sell their vi, he swiftly bought it before Clive could do so. His motive was to approach Elisa and see her more often. His scheme worked. At least Elisa had feelings for him and even argued with Mrs. Stone for his sake. ¡°It¡¯s okay. I think my method is quite useful.¡± If Remy really could note up with a new way of going after Elisa, he would refer to his sister¨Cinw¡¯s past novels. As Antonia said, Remy¡¯s sister¨Cinw used to write novels that contained many ways of flirtation for the male and female leads. He could simply apply two of those ways to his real life, and they should be useful. Remy was keen on returning to Wiltspoon mainly because he was concerned that Andrew would court Elisa when he was not around. In fact, Andrew would stay far away from her! After booking the flight in the car, Remy screenshotted the ticket and sent it to Elisa. This could arrange her time to pick him up. Elisa did not reply to his message right away. way, she This was because her mother finally came to her vi. While Remy was chatting with his mother in Annenburg, Elisa was opening the door for her mother in Wiltspoon. At the sight of her mother¡¯s solemn expression, Elisa said with a soft and cute voice, ¡°Mom.¡± As soon as Mrs. Stone, who initially looked solemn, heard her daughter call her ¡°Mom¡°, her face rxed. Filled with anger and sympathy, Mrs. Stone tapped her daughter¡¯s head. ¡°I asked you to out of the car so we could both calm down, yet you¡¯re staying outside and haven¡¯t returned home for a few days. ¡°I¡¯m worried about you, yet you¡¯re enjoying yourself outside.¡± While closing the door of the vi, Elisa said, ¡°I thought you were still mad, so I didn¡¯t dare to return. home to further anger you. That¡¯s why I stayed here for two days and only nned to go home after you¡¯ve calmed down.¡± After Elisa closed the door, Mrs. Stone entered the house with her. Chapter 1653 Chapter 1653 Chapter 1653 ¡°This house is too quiet. Get a few people to watch the house.¡± During her walk, Mrs. Stone comined that her daughter¡¯s house was too quiet. The Stones¡® housekeeper would arrange for someone to clean the vi, but no one lived there. Elisa enjoyed being alone and free without being controlled by anyone. ¡°I think this is great.¡± Elisa would like to keep to the status quo. Mrs. Stone shot a nce at her daughter. She did not want to keep arguing over the topic with her. ¡°I¡¯m attending a charity g tonight. Come with me.¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. ¡°Mom, you know I¡¯ve always disliked attending gs. You can get Seren or Liberty to apany you there.¡± Mrs. Stone could not help but poke Elisa¡¯s head. ¡°You¡¯re now a businesswoman. It¡¯s important to socialize. If you don¡¯t socialize, how are you going to do business? If you¡¯re able to do business in Wiltspoon, it¡¯s all because of your brother¡¯s reputation. Other people are willing to do it for the sake of our family¡¯s status. ¡°Thankfully, the vegetables on your farm aren¡¯t too bad. At least no one criticized it. Once you leave Wiltspoon and move to other cities, who else will know who you are? ¡°I¡¯m taking you to the g for the sake of your future. Seren doesn¡¯t like this kind of asion too, but she¡¯s responsible, self¨Cmotivated, and willing to learn to blend in with the people. She¡¯s different from before. Now, she¡¯s a lot more confident. ¡°What¡¯s more, Zachary has to attend the charity g. Seren will definitely go with him, so how can she apany me? You¡¯re my daughter.¡± Sometimes, Mrs. Stone could not do anything to her daughter. It was her family that pampered her daughter this way. ¡°What about Liberty? You can bring her along.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you know her temperament? Even Seren can¡¯t persuade her to attend, much less me. Liberty needs to look after Sonny at night.¡± Elisa pursed her lips andpromised. ¡°Fine. I¡¯ll apany you to the g. How much money and how many things is Stone Group going to donate?¡± ¡°You¡¯ll know tonight.¡± The prominent families in Wiltspoon would attend important charity gs and donate things; regardless of whether they did it out of kindness or for the sake of their reputation. money and It would be Serenity¡¯s first time apanying Zachary to attend this kind of event. The two of them were representatives of the Yorks. Mrs. Stone could not possibly get Serenity to keep herpany. ¡°Mom, will Mr. Reading attend?¡± Elisa suddenly asked. She was worried that Mrs. Stone would arrange for her to get along with Andrew. ¡°How would I know? I can¡¯t read Mr. Reading¡¯s mind.¡± Elisa stuck out her tongue yfully. Then, she stopped speaking. Mrs. Stone had made peace with Elisa. Now that Mrs. Stone came to meet Elisa personally, Elisa¡¯s anger at being kicked out of Mrs. Stone¡¯s car subsided. As Serenity was going to apany Zachary to attend the charity g, she nned to close her bookstore in the afternoon and send Sonny to Liberty¡¯s ce. That was when Jasmine came to the store. Just as Serenity was about to close the store, Jasmine said, ¡°Seren, I¡¯ll watch the store. You can do whatever you want. I felt bored staying at home. I could finally convince Josh to let me out.¡± While speaking, Jasmine walked into the store and ced her bag on the counter. She added, ¡°I¡¯ll watch the store. I¡¯d rather read novels in the store than lie at home like a pig. I sleep and eat at home, which makes me feel like I¡¯m living the life of a pig.¡± Chapter 1654 Chapter 1654 Chapter 1654 ¡°Seren, I just got pregnant and will only deliver the baby eight to nine monthster. The thought of being raised like a pig by Josh gives me a headache.¡± Seren smiled and said, ¡°You¡¯re taking things for granted.¡± Jasmine answered, ¡°I¡¯ll say this to you one day.¡± Serenity came back in while holding Sonny¡¯s hand. After Sonny greeted Jasmine, he climbed onto a chair and sat on it. Jasmine stretched out her hand to touch Sonny¡¯s face. ¡°Although I¡¯m pregnant, I¡¯m being strictly controlled. I don¡¯t have any freedom. If I can give birth to a cute baby like Sonny, it¡¯ll be worth it.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t it a baby boy in your stomach, Jazz?¡± Sonny asked innocently. Upon hearing that, Jasmine exchanged nces with Serenity before she said to Sonny, ¡°Sonny, isn¡¯t it a baby girl in my stomach?¡± Jasmine wanted a daughter. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Sonny¡¯s big eyes twinkled before he replied, ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± The question escaped Sonny¡¯s mouth instinctively. ¡°I just got pregnant, so it¡¯s not known whether the baby is a boy or a girl.¡± Knowing that Jasmine. wanted a girl, Serenityughed and said, ¡°It might be a daughter or fraternal twins like Jane¡¯s.¡± ¡°I admire Jane. I wish to have a boy and a girl too. Sadly, when I went to the hospital for a check- up, it turned out that I have only one gestational sac.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I can only give birth one by one, then. Iris has given birth, but she did itter than Jane. Iris¡¯s child was supposed to be older than Jane¡¯s. Jane was pregnant with twins, and her babies were delivered earlier than expected. In that case, Iris¡¯s son turned out to be younger than Jane¡¯s babies.¡± ¡°Iris has given birth too? A son, huh?¡± Jasmine only knew that Jane had given birth. Serenity hummed in acknowledgment. Dr. Carden was also going to give birth soon. Callum learned that Dr. Carden had returned to Annenburg and was now living there as the wife of the Johnson family¡¯s fourth young master. He immediately asked Zachary for a few days of leave as he wanted to rush to Annenburg to have Dr. Carden treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. Serenity said Zachary could not talk Callum out of it. Currently, Dr. Carden had a giant belly and was going to give birth. The Johnsons could not possibly allow Dr. Carden to fly over to Wiltspoon to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. Even if Callum sent Camryn to FC Manor, Dr. Carden probably would not have the energy to treat Camryn. Chapter 1654 Callum knew that he would not be able to get Dr. Carden to work even if he headed to Annenburg now. He nned to beg Dr. Carden first. If she agreed to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes, he did not mind. waiting. If Dr. Carden refused to do so, he would approach her several more times. No matter how high Dr. Carden¡¯s charges and requirements were, he would try his best to meet them. ¡°Seren, you¡¯re going to attend the charity g tonight, aren¡¯t you? Oh well, all I can do is hear about. it since I can¡¯t join. If I¡¯d known that I would lose freedom once I¡¯m pregnant, I would¡¯ve avoided it. I got pregnant soon after I got married. I want to spend more romantic moments with my husband.¡± Jasmine disliked attending parties back then. Now, she wanted to join the fun so badly. Unfortunately, if she wanted to leave the house, she had to beg Josh using hard and soft tactics before she could get his permission. He even arranged for many bodyguards to follow her. Those bodyguards were now lining up in a row outside. Jasmine could see why Serenity disliked being followed by the bodyguards Zachary assigned. It felt as though she was being surveilled. Serenityughed. She recalled what Zachary said when he went to the Buchams¡® house to pick her up. Zachary said that Jasmine got pregnant soon after she got married to Josh, which meant that they had lost their freedom. What was more, the couple could no longer enjoy their romantic time. Zachary added that there was nothing he admired about Josh. Serenity imed that Zachary was just jealous. Chapter 1655 Chapter 1655 Chapter 1655 ¡°Are you going home to get ready?¡± After pouring her heart out, Jasmine asked her best friend. Serenity responded, ¡°I¡¯ll send Sonny home first. He said he missed me after his ss ended, so Jim sent him over.¡± She had to apany her husband to attend the charity g at night, so it was inconvenient for her to bring Sonny along. ¡°Hurry up and leave. I¡¯ll be here to watch the store. It¡¯s been a long time since Ist sat here. I wonder if those little monkeys miss me.¡± Jasmine referred to students as little monkeys. ¡°Should I inform Mr. Bucham that you¡¯re here watching the store?¡± Jasmine said, ¡°No need. He knows about it. Look at that row of bodyguards. Even if I don¡¯t tell him, won¡¯t they do it? Josh won¡¯t stop me from watching the store. All I do is use the cash register.¡± Serenityughed. ¡°Fine. You stay here and watch the store. I¡¯ll send Sonny back.¡± ¡°Go ahead.¡± Serenity held her nephew and left the bookstore. After Serenity left, Jasmine immediately headed to the kitchen to look for ice cream in the fridge, but to no avail. She mumbled with disappointment, ¡°The weather has been so hot, yet Seren doesn¡¯t keep any ice. cream in the fridge.¡± It was impossible for her to eat ice cream in the Buchams¡® residence. Everyone would forbid her from eating ice cream because it was cold. Even Jasmine¡¯s mother reminded her not to eat too much ice cream to cool her body. It would be ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. best not to eat it at all. Jasmine¡¯s mother knew her best. Every year during the summertime, Jasmine would eat ice cream a few times a day when the weather was scorching hot. After searching the fridge for ice cream, she could not find any drinks. There were only vegetables and fruit. Disappointed, Jasmine shut the fridge door. Originally, she came to the store with the intention to satisfy her cravings, but she ended up finding nothing in the fridge. She turned around and walked out of the kitchen. She made her way to the counter to take a seat. After some thought, she left the counter and walked outside. The minute the bodyguards saw hering out, all of them fixed their eyes on her. ¡°Don¡¯t stand here. It¡¯s hot. Find a shady spot to keep cool. You¡¯ll catch the students¡® eye if you keep standing here. This will affect the business of the bookstore when school¡¯s out.¡± At the sight of a row of tall and sturdy bodyguards with fierce expressions, the students would not dare enter the bookstore as they might assume that the bodyguards were gangsters. Previously, when Zachary stood in the store with a solemn expression, the students were so frightened that they hurried away. The bodyguards that Josh chose for Jasmine were sturdy and ferocious¨Clooking. They were all dressed in ck, which was quite frightening. ¡°Missus, we¡¯re not afraid of heat. We can just sit at the entrance of the store,¡± a bodyguard replied to Jasmine on behalf of everyone. After keeping quiet for a while, Jasmine asked, ¡°Don¡¯t you find it hot? It¡¯s over ny degrees during the day. Don¡¯t you want to have some ice cream on such a hot day?¡± The bodyguards were in silence. ¡°Boris.¡± Jasmine called out one of the bodyguards¡® names ¡°Yes, Missus?¡± Boris responded politely. Jasmine said, ¡°Wait a moment. I¡¯m going to the store to get something.¡± She turned around and went into the store. She took out two hundred dors from her purse and walked out. When she handed the cash to Boris, Boris looked at her in bewilderment. ¡°Let me treat you to some ice cream on such a hot day. Take this money and buy some ice cream from Perry¡¯s shop. He sells a variety of ice cream. The expensive ice cream is tastier. You should eat the tastiest one.¡± Worried that the bodyguards did not dare spend too much money, Jasmine deliberately emphasized thest two sentences. ¡°Missus, you don¡¯t need to treat us. We¡¯ll get it on our own if we feel like eating.¡± ¡°Take the cash and buy some ice cream now. Everyone gets one.¡± Again, Jasmine stressed that everyone would get ice cream. She supposed that the bodyguards would get her one. Boris hesitated for a while and exchanged nces with his colleagues before taking Jasmine¡¯s money. Chapter 1656 Chapter 1656 Chapter 1656 The bodyguards knew that Jasmine was not the sort who would put on airs. She meant it when she said she wanted to treat them to ice cream. Even if Josh found out, he would not tell them off. Boris headed to the shop Jasmine had mentioned to buy ice cream. After Boris left, Jasmine went into the store to wait for him. She was internally excited at the thought that she could eat ice cream soon. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Boris came back shortly. However, he returned empty¨Chanded. He gave the change to Jasmine. ¡°Where¡¯s ice cream?¡± Jasmine asked in puzzlement. Could it be that Perry¡¯s shop had no more ice cream? That was not possible. During winter, Jasmine would always see ice cream in the freezer in his shop. ¡°I¡¯ve bought ice cream, and they¡¯re having it now. I came to return the change to you. Missus, thank you for treating us to ice cream.¡± Boris returned the change to Jasmine and thanked her for the treat on everyone¡¯s behalf. It felt refreshing to eat ice cream on a hot day. While receiving the change, Jasmine asked, ¡°Did everyone get ice cream?¡± ¡°Mm. Everyone got it.¡± Since Jasmine treated them to ice cream, Boris surely would buy it for all his colleagues. Even if Jasmine did not do so, he would personally buy for his colleagues. Jasmine wanted to ask why Boris did not buy one for her since everyone else had it. ¡°Thank you for the treat.¡± Boris thanked Jasmine once again. Deep down, Jasmine was disappointed, but her face did not betray it. She smiled and replied, ¡°All of you should sit under a shady area to avoid getting a heat stroke. I won¡¯t go anywhere. You don¡¯t need to watch me.¡± Boris hummed in acknowledgment. After going out, the bodyguards continued to watch her near the bookstore. Jasmine sighed helplessly. She mumbled to herself, ¡°Why didn¡¯t he think of buying me ice cream? He said everyone got it. I¡¯m also a human.¡± She touched her t stomach. She just got pregnant, so it was not obvious yet. ¡°I don¡¯t even know if you¡¯re a boy or a girl. Ever since I¡¯m pregnant with you, I can¡¯t eat ice cream. Once you¡¯re born, I must eat more ice cream.¡± Serenity did not know that her best friend¡¯s strongest craving was ice cream. Jasmine purposely treated the bodyguards to ice cream so that she could eat it as well. Unfortunately, her wish did note true. After leaving the bookstore with her nephew, Serenity first headed to Spring Blossoms. Camryn was alone in the flower shop. Two shop assistants had gone out to deliver flowers to customers. Camryn ced a rattan chair in the shop andy on it. While in her thoughts, Serenity took Sonny into the shop, but she showed no response. If this had happened back then, Camryn ¡®could straight away tell that it was Serenity once Serenity got out of the car. Camryn¡¯s hearing was excellent. When Serenity brought Sonny to Camryn, Camryn still had note to her senses. ¡°Cammy,¡± Sonny greeted politely. Given that Serenity and Camryn had a close rtionship and that Sonny was always with Serenity, Sonny was close to Camryn too. He knew that Camryn was blind, so he would take the initiative to greet her every time he saw her. It was then Camryn would know that it was Sonny. Camryn still did not respond at all. Sonny, who did not receive any response from Carmyn, raised his head and looked at Serenity. Serenity said gently, ¡°You were probably not loud enough, so Cammy didn¡¯t hear you.¡± Chapter 1657 Chapter 1657 Chapter 1657 Sonny immediately called Camryn once again. This time, he roared. Camryn finally recovered from her musings. She panicked a little and extended her hand to touch Sonny. After reaching for Sonny, she revealed a gentle smile. ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re here. Did youe with your mom?¡± Liberty would sometimes drop by Spring Blossoms to buy a few nts. The flowers that Liberty grew always ended up dead probably because she did not have time to take care of them. When they died, she would buy a few more nts and ask Camryn for advice on how to take care of them. ¡°I came with Aunt Ser. Cammy, you didn¡¯t notice that Aunt Ser and I came in. I called you just now, but you didn¡¯t respond.¡± Camryn replied apologetically, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Sonny. I was lost in thought, so I didn¡¯t hear your aunt¡¯s and your footsteps.¡± She turned her eyes to Serenity. ¡°Hello, Serenity. What brings you here?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be going with Zachary to a charity g tonight, so I nned to close the store in the afternoon to get ready at home. Sonny came to my ce this morning. I¡¯m sending him back to my sister¡¯s ce. We just dropped in here since your shop is on our way there.¡± Serenity brought two chairs over and gave one to her nephew. After taking a seat, she asked Camryn concernedly, ¡°Is your family matter settled?¡± After Camryn fired her cousins, they came to kick up a fuss at the store. Coincidentally, Callum was around when it happened. Not only did Camryn¡¯s cousins fail to take advantage of her, but they also compensated Camryn over twenty grand. Although they stopped causing amotion. in her shop, they did not let the matter rest. Two of Camryn¡¯s aunts kept pestering her using both hard and soft tactics. They went all out to bring the Chandler and Joyner brothers back to Newman Enterprise. ¡°They can¡¯t threaten me.¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Camryn said she was resolute. She stood firm and definitely would not let them return to Newman Enterprise to work. ¡°I¡¯m worried Trenton won¡¯t do well in his exam.¡± A college entrance examination would be held tomorrow. Serenity heard from Camryn that Trenton excelled in his studies. Camryn kept the matter from Trenton, not wanting him to know the truth. In this case, Trenton should be able to do well in the exam. Serenity said, ¡°You said your brother has always excelled in his studies, so you don¡¯t have to worry. As long as he performs like he usually does, he¡¯ll be able to get into the college he wants.¡± Camryn grinned. ¡°Hopefully. Once Trenton is done with the exam, it¡¯ll be time for me to put my cards on the table.¡± 1 At that instant, Serenity had no idea how to reply. Given that Serenity and Liberty shared the same parents, both of them had an intimate rtionship. On the other hand, Camryn and her brother shared the same mother but had different fathers. On the surface, Camryn was indifferent to her brother. Their rtionship was different from Liberty and Serenity¡¯s sisterhood. Since Serenity was not in Camryn¡¯s position, she could not identify with Camryn and her experience. She felt that she could notment much on it. Sonny could not sit still and touched around in the store. There were several times he wanted to pluck some flowers, but he dared not do it. He plucked a flower at Serenity¡¯s ce the other day, and Liberty gave him a piece of her mind. ¡°Serenity, I want to ask you something.¡± Serenity said softly, ¡°Go ahead. I¡¯ll tell you what I know. Do you want some water? Let me pour it for you.¡± Feeling thirsty, Serenity rose to her feet and poured some water for herself. In Camryn¡¯s shop, Serenity felt as though it was her own. She did not need Camryn to serve her. ¡°No, thank you. Serenity, I¡¯m sorry I can¡¯t serve you well every time youe.¡± ¡°We¡¯re so close. Don¡¯t mind the courtesy.¡± ¡°Aunt Ser, I want to drink water.¡± When Sonny saw Serenity pouring water, he wanted some water too. Chapter 1658 Chapter 1658 Chapter 1658 Serenity poured three sses of water and gave one ss to her nephew. Then, she brought over two sses of water and sat in front of Camryn. She handed one of them to Camryn. Serenity and Camryn drank half the sses of water. ¡°Camryn, go ahead. What do you want to ask me?¡± ¡°It seems that Callum went missing these two days. Is he away on a business trip?¡± Serenity was surprised that Camryn asked about Callum¡¯s whereabouts. Callum went to Annenburg to beg Dr. Carden to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. He did not tell Camryn about it. Before he received Dr. Carden¡¯s promise to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes, he nned to keep it from her to avoid disappointing her. Aunt Evelyn went to search for the doctor¡¯s apprentice to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. As she was not as well¨C connected as Callum, she had no idea that Dr. Carden had returned to Annenburg. The apprentice was Camryn¡¯sst hope. Although she did not mention it, Callum knew that she held high hopes for it. If he failed to get Dr. Carden¡¯s promise to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes, Camryn would be deeply disappointed. Callum did not let Camryn know, nor did hee over. Camryn could not help but guess his whereabouts. It was precisely because Camryn was guessing Callum¡¯s whereabouts and lost in thought that she did not pick up on Serenity¡¯s footsteps. After asking Serenity, Camrynughed self¨Cdeprecatingly. ¡°He usually sticks to me like glue. He¡¯s so annoying that I often ignore him. Now that he¡¯s not around for two days, I can¡¯t help but ask. about where he is.¡± Camryn did not dislike Callum. Being visually impaired, she felt that she did not deserve to be with. him. She did not want to be Callum¡¯s burden, so she always rejected him when he passionately went after her. ¡°Didn¡¯t Callum tell you?¡± Serenity asked. Camryn shook her head. ¡°He didn¡¯t tell me anything. He suddenly disappeared for two days without giving me a call. Is he away on a business trip?¡± ¡°Yeah. He left Wiltspoon to deal with something. He¡¯ll be back in a few days¡® time.¡± Since Callum did not inform Camryn about it, Serenity chose to hide it from Camryn as well. She would let Callum tell Camryn himself so that Camryn would feel touched. ¡°Oh.¡± No wonder he did not show up these two days. It turned out that he was away on business and that was what Camryn had thought earlier. Serenity mocked Camryn by saying, ¡°You¡¯ve not seen him for two days, yet you miss him already? Camryn, Callum is truly in love with you. Callum and his family don¡¯t look down on you for being blind. When your two aunts and mine met, my aunt responded filled with intimidation.¡± ¡°Even though you¡¯re blind, Callum¡¯s family will be fond of you as long as Callum likes you. You don¡¯t need to do anything. All you need to do is spend money. ¡°I can understand your concern. I had the same concern too. When I tried to understand the elders of Zack¡¯s family and blend in with them, I noticed it wasn¡¯t as difficult as I¡¯d imagined and that they¡¯re really nice. They¡¯re the most open¨Cminded elders I¡¯ve ever met.¡± It was rare to find open¨Cminded elders like those in Zachary¡¯s family. Serenity¡¯s aunt could notpare with them. Otherwise, Elisa and Remy¡¯s rtionship would not face disapproval. In order to ruin their rtionship, Mrs. Stone tricked Andrew and nned to matchmake Andrew and Elisa. After falling quiet for a while, Camryn said softly ¡°The issue lies in your background. You¡¯re not physically impaired. You can easily ovee that. But I¡¯m blind, and I can¡¯t see. I don¡¯t even know what he looks like now.¡± She had touched Callum¡¯s face before and imagined his appearance. That was just an imagination. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Did he actually look like how she imagined him to be? She had no idea! Chapter 1659 Chapter 1659 Serenity poured three sses of water and gave one ss to her nephew. Then, she brought over two sses of water and sat in front of Camryn. She handed one of them to Camryn. Serenity and Camryn drank half the sses of water. ¡°Camryn, go ahead. What do you want to ask me?¡± ¡°It seems that Callum went missing these two days. Is he away on a business trip?¡± Serenity was surprised that Camryn asked about Callum¡¯s whereabouts. Callum went to Annenburg to beg Dr. Carden to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. He did not tell Camryn about it. Before he received Dr. Carden¡¯s promise to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes, he nned to keep it from her to avoid disappointing her. Aunt Evelyn went to search for the doctor¡¯s apprentice to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes. As she was not as well¨C connected as Callum, she had no idea that Dr. Carden had returned to Annenburg. The apprentice was Camryn¡¯sst hope. Although she did not mention it, Callum knew that she held high hopes for it. If he failed to get Dr. Carden¡¯s promise to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes, Camryn would be deeply disappointed. Callum did not let Camryn know, nor did hee over. Camryn could not help but guess his whereabouts. It was precisely because Camryn was guessing Callum¡¯s whereabouts and lost in thought that she did not pick up on Serenity¡¯s footsteps. After asking Serenity, Camrynughed self¨Cdeprecatingly. ¡°He usually sticks to me like glue. He¡¯s so annoying that I often ignore him. Now that he¡¯s not around for two days, I can¡¯t help but ask. about where he is.¡± Camryn did not dislike Callum. Being visually impaired, she felt that she did not deserve to be with. him. She did not want to be Callum¡¯s burden, so she always rejected him when he passionately went after her. ¡°Didn¡¯t Callum tell you?¡± Serenity asked. Camryn shook her head. ¡°He didn¡¯t tell me anything. He suddenly disappeared for two days without giving me a call. Is he away on a business trip?¡± ¡°Yeah. He left Wiltspoon to deal with something. He¡¯ll be back in a few days¡® time.¡± Since Callum did not inform Camryn about it, Serenity chose to hide it from Camryn as well. She would let Callum tell Camryn himself so that Camryn would feel touched. ¡°Oh.¡± No wonder he did not show up these two days. It turned out that he was away on business and that was what Camryn had thought earlier. Serenity mocked Camryn by saying, ¡°You¡¯ve not seen him for two days, yet you miss him already? Camryn, Callum is truly in love with you. Callum and his family don¡¯t look down on you for being blind. When your two aunts and mine met, my aunt responded filled with intimidation.¡± ¡°Even though you¡¯re blind, Callum¡¯s family will be fond of you as long as Callum likes you. You don¡¯t need to do anything. All you need to do is spend money. ¡°I can understand your concern. I had the same concern too. When I tried to understand the elders of Zack¡¯s family and blend in with them, I noticed it wasn¡¯t as difficult as I¡¯d imagined and that they¡¯re really nice. They¡¯re the most open¨Cminded elders I¡¯ve ever met.¡± It was rare to find open¨Cminded elders like those in Zachary¡¯s family. Serenity¡¯s aunt could notpare with them. Otherwise, Elisa and Remy¡¯s rtionship would not face disapproval. In order to ruin their rtionship, Mrs. Stone tricked Andrew and nned to matchmake Andrew and Elisa. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. After falling quiet for a while, Camryn said softly ¡°The issue lies in your background. You¡¯re not physically impaired. You can easily ovee that. But I¡¯m blind, and I can¡¯t see. I don¡¯t even know what he looks like now.¡± She had touched Callum¡¯s face before and imagined his appearance. That was just an imagination. Did he actually look like how she imagined him to be? She had no idea! Chapter 1660 Chapter 1660 Chapter 1660 Duncan carried Sonny into the house and closed the door. With a grin, he asked the kid, ¡°I¡¯m a boss. I can choose not to go to work. Nobody can control me, and I don¡¯t have to worry that my sry will be cut.¡± Sonny said, ¡°Oh. But Uncle Zak is a boss too. Why does he have to go to work every day?¡± Duncan replied, ¡°Uncle Zak¡¯spany isrger than mine. He has more things to handle, so he needs to work every day.¡± Sonny was convinced. Duncan put him down. The kid had a lot of whys in his mind. If one was not quick enough to react, one would be stuck. ¡°Liberty.¡± Duncan walked to Liberty with a bouquet of flowers in his hand. He looked at her affectionately while handing the bouquet to her. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I don¡¯t like flowers. Don¡¯t send them to me next time, okay?¡± Liberty said helplessly. Although she had rejected Duncan numerous times, he continued to send her flowers. When Duncan noticed that she did not ept the bouquet, he searched for a vase and put the bouquet in it. He said, ¡°I think it¡¯s not nice toe empty-handed, so I bought a bouquet of flowers. It didn¡¯t cost a lot. It was cheap. Don¡¯t feel pressured.¡± ¡°Dunc, why did you buy flowers for my mom and not me? I love flowers,¡± said the little kid who was beside him. ¡°Sonny.¡± Liberty called her son. Duncan said with augh, ¡°It¡¯s my bad. I¡¯ll prepare a bouquet for you next time.¡± Sonny¡¯s gaze switched between Duncan and Liberty. He was confused. Sonny was told by his father that Duncan tried to snatch Liberty away from him. If Liberty was snatched away by Duncan, Sonny would end up being a kid whom no one loved. Sonny did not believe what his father said. Given that Duncan treated him well, how would he snatch Liberty from him? Duncan said he wanted to join Sonny and Liberty but did not mention snatching Liberty away and forbidding her from loving Sonny.. Hank even told Sonny that if Duncan came to look for Liberty, Sonny should call Hank so that Hank coulde over to help protect Liberty. Sonny was in a dilemma over whether he should call his father. 2/2 ¡°Mom, I want to talk to Aunt Ser on the phone.¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Sonny requested out of nowhere. After making some ravioli, Liberty replied, ¡°Aunt Ser just sent you home, and you want to call her now?¡± ¡°I just want to talk to her on the phone.¡± Liberty had no choice but to take out her phone and hand it to him. She said, ¡°Aunt Ser is busy. Don¡¯t speak to her for too long.¡± After taking over the phone, Sonny carried it and hid in the room. Duncanughed and said, ¡°Sonny is getting weirder. He even hid in his room just to speak to Serenity.¡± After washing his hands, Duncan came to help Liberty to make ravioli. ¡°Mr. Lewis, I don¡¯t need your help. You can take a seat and drink some water.¡± By the time Liberty wanted to stop Duncan from helping her, he had already started making ravioli. He said, ¡°I¡¯m not thirsty. I know you¡¯ve been making ravioli in the afternoon. I¡¯m done with my work, so I have spare time toe and help you make them so you won¡¯t be exhausted.¡± He might seem rough and burly, but he was good at making ravioli. Since Duncan insisted on helping Liberty, she found it hard to drive him away. She said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, I¡¯ve made it clear that I don¡¯t consider getting married at the moment. I have no interest in you as well. If you alwayse over, I feel torn.¡± Mrs. Lewis knew that Duncan had alwayse looking for Liberty, so she made Liberty cancel the tenancy agreement of her diner, move out, and even leave Wiltspoon. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m not expecting you to ept me right now. I won¡¯t force you. I just want to visit you. You don¡¯t have to feel pressured. If you like me, you can ept me. If you don¡¯t, we can be friends forever. ¡°You can ignore what my mom said. She can¡¯t decide on my life. You don¡¯t have to move out or leave Wiltspoon.¡± Chapter 1661 Chapter 1661 Chapter 1661 Liberty never told Duncan anything about her conversation with Mrs. Lewis. However, he still found out from his mother. Upon discovering that his mother had made Liberty move out, move away, and even leave Wilt spoon with Sonny, he quarreled with his mother in anger. Mrs. Lewis was furious, and so was Duncan. Ultimately, the mother and son were unwilling topromise. None of them would give up and let go. Liberty nced at Duncan and continued what she was doing. She said, ¡°If I¡¯m not the problem, then I won¡¯t make so many sacrifices.¡± Duncanughed. He liked that side of Liberty. Sonny, who took the phone into a room, dialed Serenity¡¯s number. He knew the first number in his mother¡¯s contact list was Aunt Ser¡¯s. Serenity picked up the phone shortly. ¡°What¡¯s the matter, Liberty?¡± She thought it was her sister who called. ¡°Aunt Ser, it¡¯s me, Sonny.¡± Hearing her nephew¡¯s young voice, Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Hey, Sonny. Did you call me yourself?¡± ¡°Yeah. I took Mom¡¯s phone and hid in a room to call you.¡± ¡°What do you want to tell me?¡± The little boy actually hid in a room to call her. Serenity felt her nephew was bing more mischievous. Learning self-defense from a teacher in the gym had made Sonny braver. At his age, he was good with words and getting increasingly likable. ¡°Dunc is here again, Aunt Ser.¡± ¡°Doesn¡¯t Dunc go there every day?¡± As far as Serenity knew, Duncan would look for his sister every day. This content provided by N(o)velDrama].[Org. Sonny replied, ¡°He does, but Dad told me Dunc is here to snatch Mom away from me. Dad said to call him whenever Dunces over.¡± Upon hearing what her nephew said, Serenity scolded Hank silently. Hank had married Jessica eagerly right after he and her sister got a divorce. The husband and wife were anticipating the birth of their child with excitement, while her sister already had a suitor. However, Hank was trying to ruin that. 2/2 Was her sister not allowed to marry someone else, but he could? Regardless of Liberty remarrying or not, Hank¡¯s teachings to Sonny demonstrated how narrow- minded he was. A sc*m would always be a sc*m. His true colors could not be changed. ¡°Aunt Ser, do you think I should call Dad?¡± Sonny asked. The people he trusted the most were Mom and Aunt Ser. He dared not ask Mom that question as she and Dad had divorced. He finally understood what a divorce was. Therefore, he could only ask Aunt Ser about it. ¡°Do you think Dunc is here to snatch your mother away from you, Sonny?¡± Serenity returned with a question. After some thought, Sonny replied honestly, ¡°Last time, Dunc told me he was here to join Mom and me. He¡¯s not a bad person.¡± ¡°Since you think Dunc isn¡¯t here to steal your mom, you don¡¯t have to care about what your father said.¡± ¡°Why did Dad say that?¡± After a moment of silence, Serenity said, ¡°Your father just finds it unfair. Don¡¯t mind him. It¡¯s fine as long as you and your mother don¡¯t hate Dunc. Is he nice to you?¡± Chapter 1662 Chapter 1662 Chapter 1662 ¡°Yes. He treats me well.¡± A child¡¯s heart was pure. Despite their young age, they were aware of who treated them well or when someone was pretending. However, they could not express themselves due to their age sometimes. Duncan noticed Sonny first. He truly liked Sonny and would always want to carry him back then. At that time, Sonny was still young and scared of the scar on Duncan¡¯s face. Therefore, he refused Duncan¡¯s embrace. Duncan¡¯s wish to carry Sonny only came true after they became familiar with each other. Duncan only paid attention to the mother and son duo because he adored Sonny. He gradually fell in love with Sonny¡¯s mother, Liberty. ¡°If Dunc treats you well and likes you so much, how will he bear to take your mother away? Believe in Duncan. He¡¯ll only love you together with your mother. He won¡¯t steal her away.¡± Sonny felt reassured. He said, ¡°I won¡¯t call Dad then, Aunt Ser. Dad always says Dunc is evil.¡± Dunc was so nice. He did not understand why Dad would say Dunc was bad. The amount of time Dunc spent with him was longer than with his dad. Dad was always with Jess. She did not like him: Whenever Dad wanted to spend time with him, Jess would say she had a stomachache. As a result, Dad would cast him aside and leave with Jess. Dunc was different. When Dunc said he would apany him, he kept his word. Unlike Dad, Dunc never broke his promise of buying him anything. ¡°Sonny, you must slowly learn to differentiate between good and bad as you grow up. Although your father is your dad, his words andments about someone might not be urate. He¡¯ll judge Duncan with his selfish opinions. ¡°You don¡¯t have to care about what bad things your father says about Duncan. If you think Duncan is a good guy who treats you and your mother well, then that¡¯s enough.¡± Sonny behaved like an adult, saying, ¡°I told my dad the same thing. I said Dunc isn¡¯t a bad person, but Dad still seemed angry.¡± Serenity scolded Hank inwardly again. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Luckily, Sonny was a bright child. He did not spend much time with Hank, so he was not misled. ¡°Aunt Ser, I won¡¯t call Dad anymore. Everything¡¯s fine now. You can continue with your work. I¡¯m hanging up.¡± After getting an answer from Serenity, Sonny hung up quickly. He proceeded to climb onto the Chapte 1662 bed and sat on it. He tapped into the browser and watched videos. Based on his swift actions, it was obvious that he was skilled at using the phone. 2/2 Liberty noticed that her son had note out after a long time. She immediately recalled that Sonny knew how to use a phone. She called, ¡°Sonny, aren¡¯t you done with the call? Return the phone to me if you¡¯re done.¡± Sonny did not reply. Liberty got up and walked toward the room. She pushed the door open and found the child on the bed, watching videos with the fan turned on. He wasughing from time to time too. ¡°Sonny!¡± Liberty walked over inrge strides and snatched the phone back. Sonny sat up and raised his head to look at his mother. His big eyes gleamed. He timidly said, Mom, I-I just yed for a while. I was really on a call with Aunt Ser just now.¡± Liberty put the phone back into her pocket and lifted him off the bed. She lectured him, ¡°From now on, your calls with Aunt Ser must be made before me. No more hiding in the room.¡± With just a slip of her attention, the child managed to get his hands on the phone. Sonny walked out while muttering, ¡°Aunt Ser and I have secrets to talk about. You can¡¯t listen to the secrets.¡± Liberty was not sure whether tough or cry. The boy was bing more like a miniature adult. ¡°You¡¯re on the phone all the time too. Why can¡¯t y on the phone?¡± Sonny asked. With a re from Liberty, he immediately jogged to Duncan¡¯s side and hid beside him. He even hugged Duncan¡¯s leg. Sonny was treating Duncan as his supporter. Chapter 1663 Chapter 1663 Chapter 1663 Sonny treated Duncan as his backer. That act, which showed his trust, made Duncan happy. He grinned and Liberty was speechless. ¡°Dunc, Mom red at me.¡± Sonny even tattled. Duncan lifted Sonny with a smile. He asked him, ¡°Think about why she red at you. I¡¯m standing here, but she didn¡¯t re at me but you. What can be the reason for this?¡± Liberty walked over. Sonny nced at his mother and said obediently, ¡°I yed on the phone after calling Aunt Ser. Mom snatched my phone away.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not your phone. It¡¯s Mom¡¯s.¡± Sonny¡¯s big eyes shone. He dared not argue over it because the phone indeed belonged to Mom. ¡°I asked why Mom could be on the phone, but I couldn¡¯t. She red at me afterward.¡± Sonny¡¯s voice gradually got softer. He knew that ying on the phone was wrong too. Duncan said gently, ¡°You¡¯re still young. Being on the phone too often will hurt your eyes and cause short¨Csightedness. Your mom is doing this for your own good. ¡°She doesn¡¯t usually y on the phone either. She uses it tomunicate with other people.¡± Sonny remained silent. After some time, he asked, ¡°When can I y on the phone, Dunc?¡± ¡°You can have it for about ten minutes asionally. Of course, not using it is the best. You can read or y with your Lego. You¡¯ve finished assembling the Lego I bought for you, right? I¡¯ll buy a few more sets for you next time.¡± Sonny nodded. ¡°Okay.¡± He wiggled and slipped to the ground from Duncan¡¯s arms. He walked past the table back to Liberty¡¯s side and hugged her leg. He raised his handsome face and said, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mom. I won¡¯t use the phone secretly anymore.¡± Liberty bent down and hugged her son. ¡°I¡¯m not angry anymore. I forgive you.¡± Sonny returned the hug. ¡°I love you so much, Mom.¡± Libertyughed. ¡°I love you a lot too. ¡°Go and y. I still have some ravioli to make.¡± Liberty stood up. After ncing at her son, she continued preparing the ravioli. As Duncan helped her, he said, ¡°You¡¯ve taught Sonny well.¡± ¡°A child¡¯s education should start early. Sonny is a happy kid with so many people doting on him. If I don¡¯t teach him in time, he¡¯ll be a spoiled child.¡± Duncan smiled and said, ¡°Sonny is adorable and affable. Everyone¡¯s drawn to him naturally once they see him and shower him with love. However, we¡¯ll also correct him and educate him if he makes a mistake. Don¡¯t worry. We won¡¯t spoil him rotten.¡± Liberty looked toward him and smiled without saying a word. The people around her were financially wealthy and well¨Ceducated. They were extremely well- mannered. They did dote on Sonny but did not spoil him. Ring, ring¡­ Duncan¡¯s phone rang. He finished trimming a few ravioli before taking his phone out to pick up the call. ¡°Where did you go again, Duncan?¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s inquisitive tone resounded from the phone.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Chapter 1664 Chapter 1664 Chapter 1664 ¡°I asked where you went. I¡¯m in your office. It¡¯s working hours, but you¡¯re neither in the office nor the building. Where have you gone? Don¡¯t tell me you went to business meetings. Your secretary is still here. ¡°Did you go looking for Liberty again? How many times have I told you? Liberty is not suitable for you. She¡¯s a divorced woman with a three¨Cyear¨Cold child. That child is even a son. You may be willing to raise a son for someone else, but I don¡¯t want to be that child¡¯s grandmother! ¡°Besides raising someone else¡¯s son, you¡¯ll have to buy a house and car and get a wife for him. His father won¡¯t contribute anything and willugh at you for being a doormat. Duncan, there are so many young, prettydies in Wiltspoon. Any one of them will be better than Liberty.¡± Mrs. Lewis was about to be angered to death by her son. He would not listen to her at all. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s words grew increasingly harsh. Duncan said in a deep voice, ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry about my matters. I¡¯ll take charge of my life. I¡¯m not like my brothers.¡± After speaking, he ended the call. Mrs. Lewis was exasperated. She paced around in Duncan¡¯s office. The secretary watched her cautiously and dared not even let out a breath. After walking back and forth several times, Mrs. Lewis went to the sofa and took her bag. She told the secretary, ¡°Go on with your work. I¡¯m leaving.¡± The secretary said respectfully, ¡°I¡¯ll escort you down.¡± Mrs. Lewis said as she walked outside, ¡°There¡¯s no need for that.¡± The secretary still escorted her to the elevator. He watched Mrs. Lewis enter the elevator and only left after the doors closed. He quickly sent a message to Duncan. ¡°Mr. Lewis, your mother may be on her way to you. It was evident from Mrs. Lewis¡¯s furious look that she would not let it slide. The secretary was willing to bet that Mrs. Lewis was definitely on her way to Ms. Hunt¡¯s ce to look for their CEO. Everyone in Lewis & Co. knew that Duncan was wooing Liberty. They were shocked and did not believe it. However, it was true. Some people often went to All You Can Eat for breakfast. They knew Liberty had sessfully lost weight and looked much prettier now. She had a nice temperament as well. They did not find it weird that Mr. Lewis would fall for her. Although Liberty was divorced and had a three¨Cyear¨Cold son, she had a mature bearing of a married woman to her, which added to her charm. It was expected that Mr. Lewis would fall in love after interacting with her frequently. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. After Duncan received his secretary¡¯s message, he mentally calcted the time needed for his mother to arrive if she was heading over. To prevent his mother from spouting harsh words in front of Liberty, he said to Liberty when his mother was about to arrive, ¡°Liberty, I have some matters to attend to. I¡¯ll leave now.¡± Liberty knew what was going on. Ever since she rejected Mrs. Lewis¡¯s request to leave Wiltspoon secretly with Sonny, Mrs. Lewis¡¯s call would always ring not long after Duncan came to look for her. Sometimes, Mrs. Lewis would evene personally. However, she was still courteous toward Liberty and never humiliated her to her face. Nevertheless, Liberty knew Mrs. Lewis had spoken countless harsh words while Duncan was on the call with her. Liberty could more or less guess based on Duncan¡¯s gloomy expression. It was usually about how she was a divorced woman with a three¨Cyear¨Cold son who did not deserve Duncan. ¡°Go ahead, Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty did not see Duncan off. After washing his hands, Duncan hugged Sonny and left reluctantly. After he had left, Liberty asked her son, ¡°Sonny, shall we live in another ce?¡± They could move to a high¨Cend neighborhood where entry was restricted unless the visitor had an entry pass or was guided by the residents. Liberty had the ability to rent such a house. With that, Duncan could note to her ce without her bringing him in or an entry pass. Liberty finally chose to run away. Chapter 1665 Chapter 1665 Chapter 1665 Sonny asked in confusion, ¡°Why do we have to move, Mom?¡± He had lived there for half a year with his mom and had gotten used to it. Liberty lied. She said, ¡°You¡¯ll start preschool in September. Your preschool is quite far from here. We can move to a ce closer to it so it¡¯s convenient for me to send you to school.¡± What opinions could a three¨Cyear¨Cold child possibly have? With Liberty¡¯s exnation, Sonny nodded his head. Therefore, she called a real estate agent, told the agent her requirements for renting a ce, and asked for rmendations. She was not in a rush to buy a house. She could look around and only decide after finding a suitable ce. Moreover, her priority was to pay for her son¡¯s education. Sonny was enrolled in Wiltspoon¡¯s best preschool. The annual school fee was about a hundred thousand to two hundred thousand dors. She had gotten some money from Hank when they got divorced. She used a portion of that money and invested in All You Can Eat. Although the diner¡¯s business was great, and she earned from it, she had also bought a car. After deducting the funds used to buy the car, the earnings of All You Can Eat were not enough to break even. She would be able to break even and make a profit after working tirelessly for another month. Liberty wanted to wait until her son started attending elementary school. She would consider buying a house only after she confirmed which school her son would attend. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. It would be ideal to purchase a house situated between elementary and junior high schools due to its convenience. While Liberty was getting a real estate agent to look for a house, Duncan had just exited the apartment building when he saw his mother getting out of the car. He was relieved that he nailed the time for his mom¡¯s arrival. He could stop his mother and not let her appear before Liberty. ¡°Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis walked over and pulled Duncan¡¯s arm. ¡°Come. Follow me.¡± ¡°To where?¡± Mrs. Lewis tugged at her son and said, ¡°I talked to Fran on the way here. She knows a suitable girl whom she can rmend to you. Go for the blind date now.¡± Duncan flung his mother¡¯s hand away. He stopped and said seriously, ¡°How many times do I have to repeat myself, Mom? I¡¯ll be in charge of my marriage. I don¡¯t need you or Dad meddling in this.¡± ¡°Duncan, let me tell you this too. I¡¯m a person of my word. I¡¯ll never allow you to be with Liberty unless the sun rises from the west. Look at the many things you¡¯ve done. Was Liberty touched? No. She doesn¡¯t like you! ¡°She¡¯s probably annoyed with you pestering her so often. If it weren¡¯t for your friendship with Zachary, she might not open the door for you and would even release a dog to bite. you. ¡°There are so many women out there. Why must you be so obsessed with her? I admit that Liberty is a nicedy, but she¡¯s unsuitable for you.¡± Duncan said in a low voice, ¡°I like Liberty. It¡¯s okay if she doesn¡¯t ept me now. I¡¯m willing to wait. I won¡¯t give up as long as she hasn¡¯t gotten married to someone else. Even if it¡¯s a year, two, or ten¨CI can wait for her.¡± Mrs. Lewis was exasperated. ¡°Ten years? You¡¯ll be almost fifty by then!¡± Duncan said nonchntly, ¡°I¡¯m willing to wait even until my hair turns gray.¡± ¡°You¡­ Are you really trying to make me die of anger to hold my funeral?¡± Mrs. Lewis was utterly enraged by her son. ¡°Duncan, even if you sessfully marry Liberty, I don¡¯t like her as my daughter¨Cinw. Your life after marriage won¡¯t be happy. I¡¯ll be sure to nitpick and find fault with Liberty frequently. I¡¯ll create all sorts of conflict and misunderstanding between you and Liberty too. ¡°That¡¯s unless you break our mother¨Cand¨Cson rtionship!¡± Chapter 1666 Chapter 1666 Chapter 1666 ¡°Mom!¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be frank here. If you can break all ties with me, I won¡¯t bother with who you like or pursue anymore.¡± After speaking, Mrs. Lewis turned and left angrily. Duncan was exasperated by his mother too. He did not understand. His mother did not hate Liberty. Why was she being stubborn and refused to let him be with Liberty? He had not even seeded in wooing Liberty. With his mother making such a big fuss, it would do nothing but hinder him. Liberty, who did not love him from the start, would be scared of his mother and dared not like him or ept his feelings. Duncan raised his head and took a look around. He did not return to Liberty¡¯s apartment but walked toward his car. After getting in, he called Zachary and Josh to invite them out for a drink. He hung up after speaking, disregarding whether they agreed to it, and started the car. Meanwhile, in the Buchams¡® residence, Josh looked at the ended call on the phone. After a moment, he scolded, ¡°I¡¯m still on my marriage leave. Why did he call me out to drink?¡± He nced at the time. It was still early and not even evening yet. What was with Duncan calling him out for a drink? After thinking about it, Josh called Zachary. When Zachary picked up, he asked, ¡°Did Duncan call you out for drinks? What kind of shock did he experience? He asked me out for a drink and hung up without giving me a chance to reject him. ¡°Hees to disturb me while I¡¯m still on my marriage leave. Are you free, Zachary? You should go with him for a drink or two. I¡¯m heading to Wiltspoon School to apany my wife.¡± After he finished speaking, Zachary said, ¡°Duncan called me just now. He ended the call without giving me the chance to refuse him too. He was obviously obstructed by his mother again when wooing my sister¨Cinw. They must¡¯ve fought again.¡± Mrs. Lewis was stubborn and unwilling to give them her blessing. Although Duncan was headstrong, she was his mother after all. He was frustrated about it too. Zachary thought, ¡®My sister¨Cinw hasn¡¯t even epted his feelings.¡® Mrs. Lewis¡¯s discouraging actions would only affect her rtionship with her son. Josh frowned. ¡°Your sister¨Cinw hasn¡¯t epted Duncan yet, right? She said she didn¡¯t like him and harbored no feelings for him. What can Mrs. Lewis achieve by making such a big fuss?¡± ¡°She¡¯s doing this because my sister¨Cinw doesn¡¯t have feelings for Duncan. She wants Duncan to give up.¡± Zachary sighed. ¡°I¡¯ll just have a drink. Let¡¯s persuade Duncan to let go too.¡± He had talked to Duncan about it before. If Liberty did not ept Duncan, he advised Duncan not to keep pestering her to prevent them from losing their friendship.Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Zachary had a solid friendship with Duncan, having been friends for many years. He was caught between a rock and a hard ce standing in between Duncan and Liberty now. Based on his understanding of Duncan, he definitely wished Duncan could end up with Liberty. If so, the rest of her life would be filled with happiness. However, Mrs. Lewis was adamant about opposing the rtionship, and her attitude worsened. Therefore, Zachary did not support Duncan and Liberty getting together anymore. After a moment of silence, Josh said, ¡°We know how Duncan is. The more someone stops him, the more he refuses to let go. He has a rebellious nature right to his bones. No one can persuade him to do otherwise unless he¡¯s willing to let it go himself.¡± Even if Liberty left, Duncan would neither give up nor let go. He would find her back even if he had to travel the entire world. Liberty was aware of the reality. Therefore, she did not think of running away. It was unavoidable. The most she could do was relocate, so Duncan could no longer visit her apartment daily. Chapter 1667 Chapter 1667 In Josh¡¯s words, they had known Duncan for so many years and knew Duncan very well. Duncan looked rough and careless, as if he didn¡¯t care about anything. In fact, he was very persistent in dealing with feelings. Liberty never remarried for the rest of her life, and Duncan would really never marry for her. If Liberty married someone else, Duncan would still not marry for the rest of his life. Duncan was such a person, if he couldn¡¯t marry the woman he wanted to marry, he would rather be single for the rest of his life. ¡°If you can¡¯t get away, I¡¯ll go. I¡¯ll apany him.¡± Zachary thought that Josh was still on marriage leave, and Jasmine was pregnant again, so Josh must not be in the mood to do other things. Josh said: ¡°Jasmine is in the bookstore. I arranged for bodyguards to protect her. I¡¯m fine. Let¡¯s go together.¡± Zachary hummed. After finishing the call, Zachary looked at Serenity who was sitting on the sofa reading a magazine. Serenity didn¡¯t pay attention to the conversation between the two, but only heard a few words, guessing that it was Josh who called. Zachary looked at Serenity quietly, and felt that when she was reading the magazine intently, there was a tranquil beauty. Although Serenity was naturally beautiful, under the nourishment of Zachary¡¯s love, she became more and more beautiful and her temperament became better and better. Well, it¡¯s Zachary¡¯s fault. Getting up, Zachary went around the desk and walked towards Serenity. Hearing the sound of footsteps, Serenity looked up at Zachary, smiled, and asked him: ¡°Are you done?¡± To prepare for the evening¡¯s activities, she came over and waited for Zachary to go home together. When she came, Zachary was still there busy, she waited in his office. ¡°Not yet.¡± Zachary walked in front of her, didn¡¯t sit down, but looked down at her. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Serenity immediately sensed that Zachary had something on his mind. She closed the magazine. ¡°Duncan made an appointment with me, Josh, to go out for a drink or two. I¡¯ll ask you for instructions.¡± Serenity smiled. She stood up and helped Zachary straighten his shirt and tie. ¡°You can go if you want. You don¡¯t need to ask me for instructions. You¡¯re fine if you¡¯re not drunk.¡± Zachary brought a group of bodyguards with him when he went in and out, and even if he drank, the bodyguards would send him back, so he didn¡¯t have to worry about being picked up by other women. ¡°For no reason, why did Duncan invite the two of you to have a drink? Did he quarrel with Mrs. Lewis again?¡± If Duncan and Mrs. Lewis quarreled, it must be because of her sister, Liberty. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. Zachary¡¯s silence was tantamount to acquiescing. After Serenity pursed her lips, she asked Zachary: ¡°Can you persuade Duncan to give up? He is always very good, but Mrs. Lewis reacted fiercely, and she still couldn¡¯t ept my sister, and my sister didn¡¯t want to be with Duncan. It will continue to develop, but Duncan will not give up, he and you are close buddies, and my sister dare not go too far.¡± Zachary: ¡°Josh and I were also discussing this issue just now, and I feel that there is little hope.¡± At this time, Serenity received a message from her sister, Liberty. Liberty told Serenity in the message that she found a new rental house and nned to move now, and told her that the new rental house was in a high-endmunity with a high level of security. Although the rent was also very expensive, in order to prevent Duncan froming to her ce every day, Liberty was willing to pay more for the rent. In addition to moving to a rented house, Liberty also told Serenity that after such a long period of observation, the two shop assistants were real people and could take over her work. She decided to give the two shop assistants a little more sry and let them take care of All You Can Eat. She reduced the number of times she went to All You Can Eat, and even if she did, she chose to go and have a look after 8 o¡¯clock. Chapter 1668 Chapter 1668 By staggering the time, she could avoid meeting Duncan. Liberty asked Serenity for help. After reading the message sent by Liberty, Serenity sighed inwardly. After all, Liberty was forced to take the road of escape. If she hadn¡¯t married Zachary, and the York family was in Wiltspoon, she would have stayed in Wiltspoon to live. Liberty might really do what Mrs. Lewis wished, and quietly leave Wiltspoon with Sonny, away from Duncan. Even if Duncan traveled all over the world, he would find Liberty, but it would take time. Serenity replied to Liberty that she respected and would help her with any decisions she made. ¡°A message from Liberty?¡± Zachary guessed. Serenity hummed. Zachary: ¡°What did she say? You look so serious.¡± Serenity: ¡°My sister is moving to a rented house now. She found a new rented house on the spur of the moment and moved to Dinshasa Community. It is a high-endmunity with a high level of security. You cannot enter without an ess card. You can only go in unless the residents in themunity lead you in. Moving to a rented house may not necessarily avoid Duncan, but at least keep him out of the Dinshasamunity.¡± After listening to Zachary, her expression was indescribable. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Serenity: ¡°¡­Zachary, I knew that Dinshasa District is developed by the Lewis & Co..¡± The Lewis & Co. was involved in real estate and had indeed developed many real estate projects. ¡°It¡¯s a real estate developed by Duncan Company. It¡¯s sold well and has a high upancy rate. The Dinshasa vi area and Dinshasa Community next to it are developed together. Duncan reserved a big vi for himself in the Dinshasa vi area.¡± ¡°People in themunity cannot pass through the vi area, but people in the vi area cane. The security level there is very high, and the security personnel hired by Duncan are all strictly trained and absolutely qualified security personnel. ¡° Serenity: ¡°¡­ My sister is throwing herself into a trap like this?¡± The rented house was moved to Duncan¡¯s site. Such these rich people had houses everywhere. Zachary said: ¡°Liberty wants to change the rent, I will arrange it for her. On our York¡¯s site, She is safer. You tell her to quit the rent and don¡¯t move to Dinshasa District.¡± Serenity: ¡°At that time, Duncan will ask Liberty¡¯s whereabouts, can you keep your mouth shut?¡± ¡°Of course, even if Duncan finds out, I won¡¯t admit that I arranged it. I¡¯m so busy, how can I care about the broken locks of who rents out the houses developed by thepany?¡± Zachary said, ¡°Duncan may not be able to find out, as long as I don¡¯t let Duncan find out, Duncan will not be able to find out.¡± Serenity believed in Zachary, if he could say it, he would do it. ¡°I¡¯ll tell my sister right now.¡± Serenity called Liberty and told her that Dinshasa District was a real estate developed by Lewis & Co., and told her not to rent a house there. Liberty: ¡°¡­¡± She almost threw herself into the trap. This time, Liberty epted Zachary¡¯s help very quickly. She said to her sister, ¡°Serenity, tell Zachary that you must keep it a secret, and don¡¯t let Duncan know.¡± ¡°Sister, don¡¯t worry.¡± Liberty: ¡°Then please Zachary arrange a ce for me, and you tell him that the rent will be paid.¡± Serenity: ¡°Okay, I told him to keep your rent, but it¡¯s cheaper.¡± Zachary said from the side: ¡°Sister, I will keep the rent, so don¡¯t worry.¡± Chapter 1669 Chapter 1669 Zachary said: ¡°Sister, we are a family, so don¡¯t be so polite.¡± He was afraid that Liberty would not ept his help. Fortunately, Liberty was anxious to move the rented house and epted Zachary¡¯s help. With the arrangement and help of her brother-inw, when Zachary left thepany to drink with Duncan, Liberty also quickly moved to rent a house. Except Zachary and Serenity knew about her new residence, not even Mrs. Stone. In an elegant room of a certain hotel, the table was filled with dishes ordered by Duncan, and he also ordered several bottles of spirits. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. At this moment, Zachary and Josh were sitting beside him, watching him drink one cup after another. ¡°Duncan, let¡¯s order some food.¡± Zachary ordered food for Duncan, probably because he felt that he chose to stand on the side of Liberty, and felt a little sorry for his friend. It¡¯s not that he didn¡¯t want to help Duncan, it¡¯s because Liberty didn¡¯t love Duncan at all, and Mrs. Lewis looked like she didn¡¯t agree with it. Zachary had no choice but to respect Liberty¡¯s choice. ¡°Duncan, let¡¯s have a bowl of soup too. You¡¯ve been drinking non-stop since you came here. Drinking on an empty stomach makes you easy to get drunk. Don¡¯t drink too much. In case of alcohol poisoning, Zachary and I will be responsible for you.¡± Josh filled Duncan with a bowl of soup, and at the same time advised Duncan to drink less. ¡°I¡¯m annoyed.¡± Duncan picked up the chopsticks and picked up the food in the bowl, which was picked up by Zachary for him. After taking two mouthfuls of food, he picked up his wine ss and drank it down in one gulp, but it was like drinking in water for such a strong wine. Putting down the wine ss, he wanted to fill himself up again, but Zachary stopped him. ¡°Duncan, don¡¯t drink any more. You¡¯ve already had several sses. You don¡¯t feel much when you drink this kind of wine. It has a strong stamina. You¡¯ll get drunk soon.¡± ¡°Zachary, I envy you.¡± Duncan patted Zachary¡¯s shoulder, ¡°I really envy you and Josh, you are all better than me.¡± After Zachary was silent for a while, he said to him: ¡°Duncan, my sister doesn¡¯t want to develop with you, she really don¡¯t want to remarry now, just give up, if this goes on, you will be the one who suffers.¡± Josh also persuaded: ¡°Yes, I think Sister Liberty really has no idea about this, your pursuit It has brought her a lot of trouble, and my aunt, Mrs. Lewis disagrees, and your most important family members are not optimistic about it, so just give up.¡± Duncan looked at Zachary and then at Josh, and said, ¡°How long have I been pursuing Liberty? If it has been ten or eight years, and Liberty still doesn¡¯t ept me, it¡¯s okay for you to persuade me to give up. I¡¯ve just started, and you¡¯re going to persuade me to give up¡­ Yes, I know I¡¯m going this way It¡¯s hard to go, but no matter how difficult it is, I will go on. My mother willpromise sooner orter, and Liberty¡¯s ce, I believe that water drips through stone, and one day, Liberty will ept me.¡± Zachary looked at Duncan and felt very guilty. Duncan dragged his two friends and chattered for a long time, until he was really drunk, and Josh sent him home, and Zachary was going to attend an event. After the event, when he returned home, Zacharyy on the bed with his beloved wife in his arms, silent for a long time. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Serenity asked with concern. Zachary: ¡°Is my sister¡¯s new home settled?¡± Serenity: ¡°There are people you have arranged to help, and it has been settled.¡± Zachary buried his head on Serenity¡¯s neck, and said in a low voice: ¡°Seren, I always feel sorry for Duncan, I think, tomorrow, Duncan will find me and ask me about this matter, you say; how should I answer him?¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t Duncan drunk? If he is drunk, he will have a headache tomorrow, so he probably won¡¯t go to see my sister.¡± Serenity put her arms around Zachary, knowing that he was difficult to be a man. Zachary: ¡°He wille to me sooner orter. s, I don¡¯t know when the two of them will have an ending, whether it¡¯s good or bad. If there is an ending, we don¡¯t have to be in a dilemma.¡± Chapter 1670 Chapter 1670 The people around her, Jasmine¡¯s love was the smoothest, without wind and waves, and soon entered the wedding hall. There were many obstacles in Elisa¡¯s love and her sister¡¯s second spring. She was lucky, she had conflicts with Zachary, the cold war, and divorce, and finally understood, respected and trusted each other, and was now happy. Zachary quickly adjusted his mentality, and said softly: ¡°Honey, go to sleep, don¡¯t think so much, let nature take its course.¡± Serenity hummed. Husband and wife embraced each other and slept without talking all night. At noon the next day, Duncan woke up. After sleeping long enough, he woke up with no obvious headache except feeling hungry. Finding that it was already noon, he got up immediately, took a shower, changed into clean clothes, and went downstairs. Still on the stairs, he saw his parents sitting on the sofa in the lobby on the first floor. Duncan¡¯s mood suddenly turned bad. Hearing the sound of footsteps, Mrs. Lewis turned her head and saw her son on the stairs. She said, ¡°Duncan, you are awake. You are hungry. You can eat.¡± Duncan went downstairs, walked over, and sat opposite his parents. Next, he asked coldly: ¡°Did my parentse here to persuade me to give up? If so, you don¡¯t need to open your mouth. I won¡¯t give up on Liberty. I just like her and I just want to marry her.¡± Mrs. Lewis originally wanted to have a good chat with her son, but the words his son spoke made her angry. Her face also turned dark in an instant. ¡°Duncan, I also said the same thing. If you want to be with Liberty, cut off the mother-child rtionship with me first. After you are no longer my son, you can marry whoever you want.¡± ¡°Wife.¡± Mr. Lewis disagreed called his wife. Duncan and Mrs. Lewis looked at each other for a long time, stood up abruptly, turned around and left. ¡°Duncan, where are you going, are you looking for Liberty again? People don¡¯t like you, so you still have to be cheeky¡­Come back to me!¡± The son left without saying a word, Mrs. Lewis was so angry that she also got up and chased after her. Seeing Duncan driving a car out of the garage, Mrs. Lewis wanted to stop the car, but was stopped by her husband. Duncan drove out of the vi. Mrs. Lewis immediately ran to her car, and Mr. Lewis had no choice but to follow. Then, Duncan¡¯s car was running fast ahead, and Mrs. Lewis wanted to stop her son from seeing Liberty again, so she chased desperately. The two cars left the vi area one after the other, and soon merged into the traffic flow of the big road outside. Duncan was still driving very fast, he kept overtaking other vehicles, mainly to get rid of his mother. ¡°Wife, slow down, stop chasing. There are so many cars on the road, it¡¯s very dangerous. If you chase like this, your son will have an ident.¡± Mr. Lewis, who was sitting in the passenger seat, kept urging his wife not to get along with him. He also disapproved of his son¡¯s pursuit of Liberty, but his son just liked Liberty, and besides, his son was 36 years old, so it was rare to have a woman he liked, so he thought, let¡¯s make his son happy. ¡°Shut up, don¡¯t talk¡­¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Before Mrs. Lewis could finish her sentence, she shed double shes and braked urgently. ¡°Bang! Bang!¡± There were two loud noises in session. Chapter 1671 Chapter 1671 It was not Mrs. Lewis who rear-ended the vehicle in front, it was Duncan who rear-ended arge truck, and the car that followed Duncan. Although he braked urgently, he still rear-ended Duncan¡¯s car. Mrs. Lewis braked in time, so she didn¡¯t continue to rear-end. After Mrs. Lewis parked the car, she immediately unbuckled her seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Mr. Lewis had not reacted yet, he had been trying to persuade his wife not to chase after his son. Mr. Lewis: ¡°Wife.¡± ¡°Duncan¡¯s car rear-ended.¡± Mrs. Lewis said a word to her husband, and she ran forward. She passed the car in front of her. That car rear-ended Duncan¡¯s car. The front of the car was damaged. The people in the car didn¡¯t move yet, so they must have been scared out of their wits. Duncan¡¯s car was much more tragic. The front half of his car almost crashed into the bottom of the truck, leaving only the back half outside. Duncan was also injured and lost consciousness. ¡°Duncan, Duncan¡­¡± Mrs. Lewis felt dizzy and couldn¡¯t stand still when she saw her son chasing after her tragically. Mr. Lewis quickly helped her up. He was also pale, but he was a man, and he was more stable than his wife. He hurriedly called 120 for an ambnce, and then called the police. ¡°Duncan, Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis broke away from her husband¡¯s support and wanted to rescue her son. Mr. Lewis also followed, but the two of them did it in vain. Traffic police, fire rescue and ambnce rushed to the scene quickly. ¡°Save him, save my son¡­¡± As soon as Mrs. Lewis saw the doctor, she clung to the doctor¡¯s clothes and begged. The doctor said reassuringly: ¡°We will try our best to treat the injured as soon as possible.¡± Mr. Lewis pulled his wife away so as not to affect everyone¡¯s treatment of his son. Mrs. Lewis cried and fell into her husband¡¯s arms. She was so regretful that her intestines were green now. If something happened to her son¡­why would she stop her son from looking for Liberty? He could find whomever he wanted, her son was 36 years old, and she knew what she wanted. At her age, she should have lived a life of caring for her grandchildren at home, so why bother with her younger son? Duncan¡¯s affairs had never been allowed to be taken care of by her mother, and she still insisted on taking care of it. What about divorced women? Allow him to go as long as he liked her and was willing to marry. But like a ghost, she disagreed life and death, and the rtionship between mother and child became worse with her obstruction. The worse the rtionship, the angrier she became, and she vowed to stop her son from pursuing Liberty, and even threatened her son to pursue Liberty. It¡¯s all her fault, she hurt Duncan. Mr. Lewis was also very scared and worried, but at this moment he could only hold his wife¡¯s shoulders andfort his wife in a low voice. Thinking of something, Mr. Lewis took out his mobile phone, called the other three sons, and told the three sons: ¡°Come here quickly, Duncan was in a car ident.¡± He told the three sons where the incident happened. When the three masters of the Lewis family heard that the younger brother had a car ident, they immediately left their work and rushed to the scene of the ident. When they arrived at the scene of the car ident, Duncan had already been rescued and rushed to the hospital for emergency treatment. Mr. Lewis and his wife also went to the hospital. The three masters of the Lewis family called their parents again, knowing that his younger brother had been sent to Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital for emergency treatment, and they rushed to Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital without stopping. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Soon after, Zachary also received the news. It was Josh who informed Zachary. The news of the Bucham family was the most well-informed. Zachary was still waiting for Duncan to settle the score with him after he woke up, because he helped Liberty once and arranged a new rental house for her. Chapter 1672 Chapter 1672 -Duncan would go to Liberty¡¯s rented house to look for her every day, Zachary counted the time and thought that Duncan will wake up at noon, and then go to Liberty, and will find that Liberty has moved. In the end, what Zachary waited for was the news that Duncan had a car ident. ¡°Where did he have a car ident? Did he hit someone else or someone else hit him? How is the injury?¡± When Zachary received a call from Josh, he happened to be on his way to Wiltspoon Middle School and was going to have lunch with Serenity. Jasmine couldn¡¯te to the bookstore today, but yesterday afternoon she stayed at the bookstore all afternoon. Josh felt sorry for her being tired, but in fact she wasn¡¯t tired at all, but the man who doted on his wife said that when his wife was tired, she was tired. Today, no matter what, Jasmine was not allowed to go out again. Jasmine, who was already a national treasure in the Bucham family, could only stay at home honestly, video chatting with friends from time to time,ining about many restrictions when she was just pregnant, how would she live in the next few months. ¡°On the road near the Phoenix Vi area, he was the one who rear-ended arge truck and was seriously injured, especially his legs¡­ I don¡¯t know if he can save it.¡± Josh learned from Young Master Bucham. When the news came out, his mobile phone fell to the ground. He didn¡¯t believe that his best buddies would encounter any idents, so he hurried to the hospital and notified Zachary at the same time. ¡°Which hospital is Duncan at now? I¡¯ll go there right away.¡± Josh told him. Zachary immediately ordered the driver: ¡°Don¡¯t go to Wiltspoon Middle School, go to the Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital, hurry up.¡± Driver: ¡°Young master, you can only turn around at the traffic light ahead.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t speak, and acquiesced to turn around at the intersection ahead, no matter how impatient he was, he had to abide by the traffic rules. Ten minutester, Zachary rushed to the hospital. Duncan was still in the emergency room. His parents, brother-inw, and some members of the Lewis family were standing guard at the door of the emergency room, all of them looked nervous and worried. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes were swollen from crying, and she med herself to death. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. She kept doing worship movements, praying that God would not take the life of her youngest son. She promised that she would never care about Duncan¡¯s rtionship again as long as Duncan lived. She epted his desire to marry a man and return home. She only wanted her son to live! Josh also arrived at this time. After he and Zachary met, the two walked quickly together. ¡°Uncle, Auntie.¡± Zachary and Josh first greeted Mr. Lewis and Mrs. Lewis. Mrs. Lewis was only sad and med herself, and did not respond to the two people¡¯s greetings. Mr. Lewis nodded. ¡°How is Duncan?¡± Zachary asked with concern. ¡°Still being rescued, his legs are the most seriously injured.¡± Mr. Lewis¡¯s face was also as pale as paper, and he held on, telling himself that he couldn¡¯t fall down now. He didn¡¯t know if his son was alive or dead. ¡°Dad, Mom, Duncan will be fine, he will be fine.¡± Older Young master Lewisforted his parents. In fact, they were also worried and scared. The three young mistresses of the Lewis family apanied her mother-inw,forting her in a low voice. After knowing the main reason for Duncan¡¯s car ident, everyone wanted to me Mrs. Lewis, but seeing Mrs. Lewis crying into tears, she med herself a lot. At this time, no one wanted to me a mother. The person who suffered the most and regretted the most was none other than Mrs. Lewis. Serenity on the other side, after finishing her work, found that Zachary hadn¡¯te yet, so she called Zachary, who went to the side to answer the phone. Serenity: ¡°Honey, didn¡¯t you say you wanted toe and dine with me? The hotel has already delivered the food you ordered.¡± Chapter 1673 Chapter 1673 After hesitating for a while, Zachary still told the truth to Serenity. ¡°Serenity, I don¡¯t want to go. After the food is delivered, you can eat it yourself. I¡¯m here¡­I¡¯m in the hospital, and Duncan had a car ident.¡± Hearing this, Serenity¡¯s expression changed, and she asked quickly: ¡°How did the car ident happen? Did it happen when you and Mr. Lewis were together? Did you two drink again? Drunk driving?¡± Zachary hurriedly exined: ¡°No, we didn¡¯t drink today. We did drink yesterday. Neither of us was driving. I don¡¯t know what¡¯s going on. Josh informed me and I went to the hospital immediately. Duncan is still in the process of rescue. He said that his legs were the most seriously injured. I don¡¯t know if he can save legs.¡± At the end, Zachary¡¯s tone was low and his speech speed became slow, looking sad. Serenity: ¡°I¡¯m done with my work now, close the store, and I¡¯ll go to the hospital too.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t stop Serenity froming, he told: ¡°Drive slowly.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll let the bodyguard drive, don¡¯t worry too much, nothing will happen.¡± Serenity could onlyfort Zachary. Zachary hummed, ¡°It will be fine!¡± He believed that Duncan would survive. ¡°Serenity,e back after you have something to eat.¡± Worried about his friend, Zachary also reminded Serenity toe back after eating. He would not be in the mood to eat when he came to the hospital. Serenity followed suit and starved. Serenity: ¡°Okay, how many people are guarding in the hospital, I will pack fast food for everyone.¡± ¡°No need, you can eat by yourself, I¡¯ll send someone out to buy food.¡± With Zachary¡¯s arrangements in ce, Serenity felt relieved. After finishing the call, she ate some food as quickly as possible, and then hurriedly moved the shelves at the entrance of the store into the store. The bodyguard found that she was about to close the shop and came in to help. A few minutester, Serenity got into the car, and the bodyguard drove her to Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital. On the way, she thought about it for a long time, and finally got through to her sister¡¯s cell phone. ¡°Auntie.¡± The person who answered the phone was Sonny. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, where is Mom, tell Mom to answer the phone.¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Sonny: ¡°Auntie, don¡¯t you miss me? I miss Auntie. Auntie, Mom and I have moved to a new house. Do you want toe and live with us? I-I want to live with my aunt and mother.¡± As before, Sonny could see his aunt every day. When Serenity was still living in her sister¡¯s house, Sonny had a good memory, and she had a little impression of her. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, Auntie has something urgent to tell mom. Give mommy the phone first.¡± Sonny snorted, walked into the kitchen with the phone, and said to Liberty who was washing the dishes: ¡°Mom, auntie¡¯s call.¡± Liberty took the phone, turned on the speakerphone, and asked her sister while washing the dishes: ¡°Serenity, what¡¯s the matter?¡± Serenity: ¡°Sister, something happened to Mr. Lewis.¡± Hearing this, Liberty was stunned and asked: ¡°What happened to him?¡± ¡°Zachary said that Mr. Lewis had a car ident. I don¡¯t know what caused it. The injury is serious. He¡¯s still in the hospital for rescue. I¡¯m on my way to the hospital. When you had an ident, he also ran up and down to help a lot, and even guarded you in the hospital all night. I don¡¯t think this matter can be kept from you, so let me tell you.¡± It was Liberty¡¯s decision whether to go to the hospital or not. Liberty didn¡¯t even wash the dishes, and said: ¡°I¡¯m going to the hospital now.¡± It had nothing to do with feelings, she and Duncan had known each other for nearly a year, and Duncan had always taken care of her. When she had an ident, Duncan also guarded her in the hospital. Because of these favors, Liberty also went to the hospital to wait for Duncan to wake up. Serenity: ¡°Sister, if you decide to go to the hospital, I¡¯ll turn around and pick you up right now.¡± Liberty: ¡°No, I¡¯ll drive there by myself.¡± Serenity reminded: ¡°So, sister, be careful when you drive, and will you go to the hospital with Sonny?¡± Chapter 1674 Chapter 1674 After hesitating for a while, Zachary still told the truth to Serenity. ¡°Serenity, I don¡¯t want to go. After the food is delivered, you can eat it yourself. I¡¯m here¡­I¡¯m in the hospital, and Duncan had a car ident.¡± Hearing this, Serenity¡¯s expression changed, and she asked quickly: ¡°How did the car ident happen? Did it happen when you and Mr. Lewis were together? Did you two drink again? Drunk driving?¡± Zachary hurriedly exined: ¡°No, we didn¡¯t drink today. We did drink yesterday. Neither of us was driving. I don¡¯t know what¡¯s going on. Josh informed me and I went to the hospital immediately. Duncan is still in the process of rescue. He said that his legs were the most seriously injured. I don¡¯t know if he can save legs.¡± At the end, Zachary¡¯s tone was low and his speech speed became slow, looking sad. Serenity: ¡°I¡¯m done with my work now, close the store, and I¡¯ll go to the hospital too.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t stop Serenity froming, he told: ¡°Drive slowly.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll let the bodyguard drive, don¡¯t worry too much, nothing will happen.¡± Serenity could onlyfort Zachary. Zachary hummed, ¡°It will be fine!¡± He believed that Duncan would survive. ¡°Serenity,e back after you have something to eat.¡± Worried about his friend, Zachary also reminded Serenity toe back after eating. He would not be in the mood to eat when he came to the hospital. Serenity followed suit and starved. Serenity: ¡°Okay, how many people are guarding in the hospital, I will pack fast food for everyone.¡± ¡°No need, you can eat by yourself, I¡¯ll send someone out to buy food.¡± With Zachary¡¯s arrangements in ce, Serenity felt relieved. After finishing the call, she ate some food as quickly as possible, and then hurriedly moved the shelves at the entrance of the store into the store. The bodyguard found that she was about to close the shop and came in to help. A few minutester, Serenity got into the car, and the bodyguard drove her to Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital. On the way, she thought about it for a long time, and finally got through to her sister¡¯s cell phone. ¡°Auntie.¡± The person who answered the phone was Sonny. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, where is Mom, tell Mom to answer the phone.¡± Sonny: ¡°Auntie, don¡¯t you miss me? I miss Auntie. Auntie, Mom and I have moved to a new house. Do you want toe and live with us? I-I want to live with my aunt and mother.¡± As before, Sonny could see his aunt every day. When Serenity was still living in her sister¡¯s house, Sonny had a good memory, and she had a little impression of her. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, Auntie has something urgent to tell mom. Give mommy the phone first.¡± Sonny snorted, walked into the kitchen with the phone, and said to Liberty who was washing the dishes: ¡°Mom, auntie¡¯s call.¡± Liberty took the phone, turned on the speakerphone, and asked her sister while washing the dishes: ¡°Serenity, what¡¯s the matter?¡± Serenity: ¡°Sister, something happened to Mr. Lewis.¡± Hearing this, Liberty was stunned and asked: ¡°What happened to him?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Zachary said that Mr. Lewis had a car ident. I don¡¯t know what caused it. The injury is serious. He¡¯s still in the hospital for rescue. I¡¯m on my way to the hospital. When you had an ident, he also ran up and down to help a lot, and even guarded you in the hospital all night. I don¡¯t think this matter can be kept from you, so let me tell you.¡± It was Liberty¡¯s decision whether to go to the hospital or not. Liberty didn¡¯t even wash the dishes, and said: ¡°I¡¯m going to the hospital now.¡± It had nothing to do with feelings, she and Duncan had known each other for nearly a year, and Duncan had always taken care of her. When she had an ident, Duncan also guarded her in the hospital. Because of these favors, Liberty also went to the hospital to wait for Duncan to wake up. Serenity: ¡°Sister, if you decide to go to the hospital, I¡¯ll turn around and pick you up right now.¡± Liberty: ¡°No, I¡¯ll drive there by myself.¡± Serenity reminded: ¡°So, sister, be careful when you drive, and will you go to the hospital with Sonny?¡± Chapter 1675 Chapter 1675 -Mrs. Lewis¡¯s body swayed, and her two daughters-inw hurriedly supported her. ¡°Mom.¡± The two daughters-inw cried out worriedly. ¡°It¡¯s a good start if Duncan¡¯s life is not in danger, and he will recover slowly.¡± Mrs. Lewis beat her chest remorsefully, and said remorsefully, ¡°It¡¯s all me, it¡¯s me who killed Duncan, why did the car ident happen? I¡¯m not the person? I¡¯d rather be the one who got into the car ident.¡± ¡°Mom, Duncan will be fine. The doctor said he will recover.¡± Older Young Master Lewis alsoforted his mother. With a serious face, Mr. Lewis said to his son and daughter-inw: ¡°Help you go back to rest. Duncan is here with me.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t go, I won¡¯t go, I will wait for Duncan toe out, and I will take care of Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis refused to leave. Duncan¡¯s operation was over, but he had not been released yet, so she was worried. Her son¡¯s misfortune was caused by her being too extreme as a mother. How could she leave? Mrs. Lewis¡¯s self-ming words were heard by everyone, and Zachary and others wanted to know exactly how the car ident happened. Seeing the sad look of the Lewis family, Zachary and others endured it for the time being. After Duncan was pushed out by the doctors and nurses and transferred to the ward, Zachary and Josh asked Mr. Lewis why. Mr. Lewis looked at Mrs. Lewis who was sitting in front of the hospital bed crying, sighed, and said softly to Zachary and Josh: ¡°Let¡¯s go outside and talk.¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. When Mr. Lewis turned around, he saw Liberty holding her son and Serenity together. After entering, Mr. Lewis paused, and said to Liberty in a pleading tone: ¡°Miss Hunt, can you wait here until Duncan wakes up?¡± He felt that his son would feel better when he woke up and saw Liberty. Liberty said softly, ¡°Uncle Duncan, I will.¡± Mr. Lewis thanked her. Liberty hurriedly said: ¡°Uncle, you don¡¯t need to thank me, Mr. Lewis and I are also friends.¡± After looking at Liberty for a while, Mr. Lewis walked out of the ward without saying anything. Zachary and Josh followed and saw that Mr. Lewis hade to the end of the corridor. He had already taken out a cigarette, lit it and was smoking. Seeing two people approaching, Mr. Lewis handed them each a cigarette. Two people took the cigarettes, but did not smoke. Even though Zachary could smoke, he didn¡¯t do it very often because Serenity didn¡¯t like the smell of tobo. Chapter 1676 Chapter 1676 Josh was considering that his wife was pregnant and he did not want to smoke. ¡°Uncle, what happened at that time? How did Auntie say that she harmed Duncan?¡± Zachary asked in a low voice. Josh also looked at Mr. Lewis, waiting for Mr. Lewis to tell the truth. ¡°Oh, it¡¯s our fault. Duncan was drunk yesterday. After you sent him home, his mother called him, but he didn¡¯t answer. He called the butler again, only to find out that he was drunk. This morning, If his mother insists on going there, I will go there with her. Duncan didn¡¯t wake up until noon, and when he woke up and saw us, he didn¡¯t say a word, and the mother and son quarreled again. Duncan didn¡¯t want to quarrel with his mother, so he got up and left.¡± Mr. Lewis recalled the scene at that time, if he knew that this would cause his son to have a car ident, he would drag his wife back. He also felt that he did not persuade his wife, which caused the conflict between the wife and the youngest son to be more and more intense. ¡°Duncan¡¯s mother asked him if he was going to find Liberty again, and wouldn¡¯t let Duncan go out. Duncan ignored his mother and drove away. His mother was so angry that she drove after Duncan in spite of herself, wanting to stop Duncan from going to Liberty. I¡¯m following, and I¡¯m trying to persuade his mother to stop fighting with Duncan. Duncan is 36 years old. He knows what he¡¯s doing. As parents, we don¡¯t need to worry about him anymore. Duncan has always been an independent som and doesn¡¯t like being bound by the family. The more we oppose him pursuing Liberty, the more he will oppose us. His mother won¡¯t listen Go in, Duncan saw that we were chasing him, the speed was very fast, and he kept overtaking other vehicles. It was also because the speed was too fast that he rear-ended arge truck. It was at the intersection of traffic lights. The truck slows to a stop.¡± Speaking of this, Mr. Lewis med himself: ¡°It¡¯s all our fault. If it weren¡¯t for our pursuit, Duncan wouldn¡¯t be driving so fast, and he wouldn¡¯t be a big truck that slowed down and wanted to stop because the brakes couldn¡¯t catch up to the rear.¡± Zachary look at Josh and Josh look at Zachary, and no one knew how to answer the conversation. When Duncan went out, he didn¡¯t necessarily go to find Liberty, but Mrs. Lewis was too tense, and always felt that her son was going to find Liberty when he went out, so she chased after her son, trying to stop him from going to Liberty. Duncan was probably full of anger at the time. Because he was angry, he was not concentrated enough when driving, and he was drunk yesterday and only woke up today, so he felt a little ufortable, and something happened. After a while, Zachary saidfortingly: ¡°Uncle, Duncan will recover.¡± As long as Duncan could save his life, other injuries would heal slowly. ¡°Duncan was mainly injured in his legs. You heard what the doctor said. His follow-up recovery will take a long time. I am just worried that after Duncan wakes up, he knows that he will be in a wheelchair for a long time and needs to undergo rehabilitation. He can¡¯t ept it. Don¡¯t look at him carelessly, as if everything can be seen, in fact, he is a very fragile person. He used to be rebellious, which caused his grandma¡¯s illness to worsen and passed away. For more than ten years, still he is living in self-me.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. If the scar on his face is not removed, he will not be able to get rid of self-me, and now such a disaster has happened, I am afraid that he will not be able to bear it.¡± Mr. Lewis worried about his son. Could he ept the fact that his legs might not work when he woke up? Even if it can be cured, it would take a long time. ¡°You said, why do we parents make it difficult for our son? Whoever he likes, let him go after him, what to stop him? He is so old, and there is only one person he likes. We don¡¯t support him, he was annoyed, and when his temper came up¡­¡± Mr. Lewis said regretfully: ¡°What¡¯s the use of talking more now, something happened to my son.¡± Josh saidfortingly: ¡°Uncle, although Duncan has a fragile side, he is also very strong. He is not so easy to be defeated. His leg injury will definitely heal. Duncan likes Sister Liberty. I think it¡¯s up to them to deal with emotional matters, and it¡¯s best for others not to intervene, we¡¯re all grown-ups, and we¡¯re not too young, so we can¡¯t handle our emotional problems well?¡± Mr. Lewis looked at Zachary, his lips moved, he wanted to say something, but he couldn¡¯t speak. After a moment of silence, Zachary said, ¡°My sister really has no other thoughts about Duncan, but she doesn¡¯t hate Duncan, she regards Duncan as a friend.¡± Chapter 1677 Chapter 1677 After seeing Duncan¡¯s feelings, they also supported Duncan, but Liberty really didn¡¯t consider remarrying, yes Duncan also really had no love for men and women, and Mrs. Lewis blocked her fiercely, so Zachary wanted to persuade Duncan to give up. Zachary felt that even if Liberty agreed to Duncan¡¯s pursuit, it would be difficult to be happy in the future, because of the existence of Mrs. Lewis as a mother-inw. The first was his closest friend, and the second was his sister. Zachary was also very difficult to do. he persuaded his buddies to give up. The buddies think that he was not enough friends, so he persuade Liberty to ept it. It felt like pushing Liberty into a fire pit. Zachary felt that the rtionship between himself and Serenity was not as difficult as that of Liberty and Duncan. Duncan discovered his feelings for Liberty when Liberty had an ident. Now that Liberty had recovered, it took only two or three months, and the time for Duncan to pursue Liberty was even shorter. As a result, before he could touch Liberty, he had a car ident because of his conflict with his mother. For the future of him and Liberty, Zachary and Josh were not optimistic, and even fould it more difficult than before. Duncan suffered this injury, and with his character, there was a high probability that he would stay away from Liberty. Two people, it was possible that there was no rtionship between them, leaving a lifetime of regret. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. ¡°We know, we know that Liberty doesn¡¯t love Duncan, but only regards Duncan as a friend, and there are also reasons for you. That¡¯s why your aunt stopped Duncan, because the problem lies with Duncan.¡± Mr. Lewis sighed. Liberty didn¡¯t love Duncan, it was Duncan who was pursuing Liberty. Duncan was very good, but the scar on his face was scary. Many girls were afraid to associate with him, always thinking that he was a violent person. asionally, those who were willing to try to communicate were mostly because of Duncan¡¯s status and wealth. Lily might be the most real one. The Harmon family and the Lewis family were right in line, and Lily didn¡¯t dislike the scary scar on Duncan¡¯s face. It¡¯s a pity that the two had no rtionship. Now, Lily had given up on Duncan, and only made business friends with Duncan. Mr. Lewis sighed again, ¡°When Duncan recovers, if he wants to pursue Liberty, his mother and I will never stop him. As long as our son lives well, he can ept anything.¡± It¡¯s a trifle. Zachary and Josh looked at each other and could only say a few words offort. Duncan woke up that night. When he woke up, the first thing he saw was the white ceiling in the ward. He wanted to move, but he felt pain all over his body, especially the pain from his legs, which was severe and heartbreaking. The pain made him break out in a cold sweat. ¡°Duncan, you¡¯re awake.¡± Duncan moved, and Mrs. Lewis, who was guarding the bed, noticed him. She stood up in surprise and said to her husband, ¡°Duncan is awake, call the doctor toe and take a look.¡± ¡°Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis came closer and looked at his pale face, her eyes were red again. Duncany still and couldn¡¯t move. He looked around the people in the ward with great effort. Apart from his family and his friends, he also saw Liberty and Sonny in the crowd. Liberty hugged Sonny. He was tired, so he put his head on his mom¡¯s shoulder. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s shout must have disturbed Sonny. He opened his eyes, raised his head, and turned to look at Duncan on the hospital bed. Sonny and Duncan looked at each other. Sonny struggled to get off the ground. Chapter 1678 Chapter 1678 -Liberty put Sonny down. Sonny walked to the hospital bed and said to Duncan: ¡°Uncle Duncan, you will be fine, you will be fine, and you will be fine like my mother.¡± Duncan smiled weakly and did not speak. When the doctors and nurses came to look at it, the doctor didn¡¯t say much else, but he did say that there were too many people in the ward. The hurt person needs a good rest. Now that the people who had been hurt were awake, everyone could go back to sleep. It was not necessary to crowd all in the ward, but it affected him. In the end, only Duncan¡¯s parents insisted on staying with him, and the others left the hospital one after another after caring about Duncan. The night was getting dark. Because of Duncan¡¯s car ident, everyone¡¯s heart was extremely heavy. Under Serenity¡¯s insistence, Liberty took her son back to the vi on the top of the hill with Serenity and Zachary. Along the way, Serenity silently held Liberty¡¯s hand. The two sisters didn¡¯t speak, but they understood each other¡¯s feelings. The next day, the news that the boss of the Lewis & Co. had a car ident spread in Wiltspoon. They didn¡¯t know if paparazzi could do it or if they already knew that Duncan was after Liberty, and Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Lewis were there at the time of the incident, so the news is a little bit of a guess. It¡¯s suspected that Duncan had a conflict with his parents, and the car ident urred when he drove crazily. There was only one reason for Duncan¡¯s conflict with his parents, that was, the Lewis family did not approve of Duncan¡¯s pursuit of the eldest sister of Zachary. Although this news was not as explosive as Zachary¡¯s announcement that he was married, it still rushed into the hot searches in Wiltspoon, and Liberty was naturally involved. Liberty didn¡¯t read the news, she got up early and wanted to do something, but she couldn¡¯t find anything to do at Serenity¡¯s house. There were maids. She could only walk around the yard a few times, and when it was bright, she saw Sonny being sent to ss by Jim, and after talking to the butler, she left the hilltop vi without waiting for Serenity and Zachary to get up. Liberty went to Wiltspoon People¡¯s Hospital. When she came to Duncan¡¯s ward, she knocked on the door. Soon, Mr. Lewis came to open the door and saw that it was Liberty, who was still holding a bouquet of flowers and carrying a basket of fruit. Mr. Lewis quickly took the basket of fruit from Liberty. ¡°Miss Hunt,e and see Duncan,e in quickly.¡± Mr. Lewis was now facing Liberty with kindness. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Liberty walked into the ward, and asked softly, ¡°Is Mr. Lewis awake?¡± ¡°Not yet. He fell asleep¡­ verytest night.¡± Last night , After everyone left, Duncan asked his parents about his injuries, knowing that his legs were seriously injured, which was why he woke up feeling the most pain in his legs. Although his leg was preserved, the follow-up recovery time was extremely long, and he would need to sit in a wheelchair for a long time. If he couldn¡¯t stick to rehab, he might be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life. The following words were not said by Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Lewis, but the truth that Duncan asked to see the doctor from the doctor. After that, Duncan seemed to be paralyzed, which frightened Mr. Lewis and Mrs. Lewis. Thankfully, Duncan did not make a fuss, and he was awakened. Mr. Lewis was quite worried that his son would make a fuss again when he woke up again. Liberty came to visit his son, Duncan at this time, and he regarded Liberty as a savior. With his son¡¯s liking for Liberty, when he woke up and saw Liberty was there, his son¡¯s mood would be better. Chapter 1679 Chapter 1679 Mrs. Lewis stayed in front of the bed like yesterday. When she saw Libertying in, she quickly got up and said softly: ¡± Liberty, you¡¯re here.¡± ¡°Auntie, let mee and see Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty also said softly, afraid of waking Duncan on the bed. Mrs. Lewis ced the bouquet next to her son after she received the bouquet from Liberty. The son could see the bouquet from Liberty when he awoke. It would improve his disposition and give him the confidence to heal his legs. As soon as Mrs. Lewis put the bouquet beside Duncan, he woke up. When he opened his eyes, he saw Liberty standing in front of the bed. He was silent at first, then became extremely indifferent the next moment, and the words he said were also cold, ¡°Mom, drive her away, I don¡¯t want to see her!¡± Hearing this, The three people standing in front of the bed were all stunned. Mrs. Lewis looked at her son and then at Liberty, suspecting that her son didn¡¯t see clearly that the person standing here was Liberty. She reminded her son softly and cautiously: ¡°Duncan, this is Liberty, it¡¯s Liberty, she¡¯s here to see you.¡± Duncan didn¡¯t look at Liberty again, but still said coldly, ¡°I know who she is, just Liberty, I don¡¯t want to see her. If it wasn¡¯t for her, I wouldn¡¯t have been in a car ident, and I don¡¯t want to see her again.¡± ¡°Duncan!¡± Mrs. Lewis groaned and med herself, ¡°This¡¯s all mother¡¯s fault, it has nothing to do with Liberty, how can you say such words and put the me on Liberty.¡± ¡°It¡¯s because of her that my mother stopped me and I got into a car ident, it¡¯s all her!¡± Duncan looked very excited and shouted, ¡°Mom, tell her to go, don¡¯t let here into my ward in the future, I don¡¯t want to see her! Let her go, let her go, if she doesn¡¯t go, I will go!¡± He struggled, but he couldn¡¯t move, the wound would be dragged on whenever he moved. ¡°Duncan, please don¡¯t do this¡­ Please don¡¯t do this.¡± Mrs. Lewis cried and held her son down to prevent him from struggling. Mr. Lewis also helped hold his son. ¡°Mom, let her go, let her go!¡± Duncan couldn¡¯t get up, he could only look resentful, and screamed for his mother to drive Liberty away. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Okay, okay, mom let her go, mom let her go right away, don¡¯t get excited, don¡¯t get excited.¡± Mrs. Lewis quickly agreed, she wiped her tears, stood up straight, turned around and pulled Liberty out. Liberty was startled by Duncan¡¯s reaction, and when Mrs. Lewis pulled her out, she turned to look at Duncan, and Duncan also looked at her at this time. But soon, she was pulled out of the ward by Mrs. Lewis, and the door of the ward was closed, separating her from Duncan. She didn¡¯t catch the pain in Duncan¡¯s eyes. Duncan could be crippled, he could be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life. He was not good enough for Liberty. There was such a big contrast in the attitude of his parents towards Liberty, he was hurting his legs but not his head, so he quickly figured it out. After a car ident, he was so injured, and the mother who blocked him from pursuing Liberty must have regretted it, and would agree with him to be with Liberty, and even hoped that Liberty could take care of him for the rest of his life. When he was fine, his mother didn¡¯t allow him to be with Liberty, but when he was disabled, his mother agreed, that was too unfair to Liberty. Besides, Liberty never said that she loved him or epted his feelings. Duncan couldn¡¯t let his mother tie up Liberty to take care of him just because he was disabled. He didn¡¯t want to drag Liberty down. Duncan thought about it all night. He could only treat Liberty indifferently, and me Liberty for his car ident. He didn¡¯t want to see Liberty again. Chapter 1680 Chapter 1680 The mother had not done it yet. When he was discharged from the hospital and couldn¡¯t continue to do leg rehabilitation, the mother would definitely go to find him Liberty¡¯s. He blocked that road ahead of time. After the door of the ward was closed, Mrs. Lewis let go of Liberty¡¯s hand, turned around and cried against the wall, covering her face. Liberty was silent, took two steps forward, patted Mrs. Lewis on the back shoulder, andforted Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Auntie, he will be fine, don¡¯t worry too much.¡± She took out a tissue and handed it to Mrs. Lewis. Mrs. Lewis took the tissue, turned around, wiped her tears and apologized to Liberty, ¡°Liberty, this matter has nothing to do with you, it¡¯s my fault, I stopped Duncan from looking for you. It was all my fault that the car ident happened. Duncan was paralyzed when he found out about his injuryst night. I think he couldn¡¯t bear such a blow, so he treated you like that. You, don¡¯t take it to heart.¡± Liberty: ¡°Auntie, I won¡¯t argue with him.¡± Duncan was the proud son of heaven; however, he was so severely injured that he was unable to withstand the blow, and his demeanor changed drastically, which was understandable. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m sorry.¡± Mrs. Lewis apologized again. ¡°It¡¯s all my fault, it¡¯s my fault, if it wasn¡¯t for me, Duncan wouldn¡¯t have had a car ident, it¡¯s all my fault, Liberty, don¡¯t me Duncan.¡± Liberty nodded. What Duncan said just now was ugly. She felt very hurt when she heard it, but she didn¡¯t me Duncan. Liberty: ¡°Mr. Lewis doesn¡¯t want to see me now. I¡¯ll take a look outside when Ie over. I won¡¯t go in to provoke Mr. Lewis. Auntie, I¡¯m leaving first.¡± Duncan didn¡¯t want to see Liberty now, and it¡¯s useless for Liberty to stay there. If Duncan knew that she hadn¡¯t left yet, he might be agitated. Mrs. Lewis choked with sobs and said, ¡°In a few days, when Duncan¡¯s mood calms down a bit, you can come and see him again, and I will ask him to apologize to you.¡± Liberty nodded. Under Mrs. Lewis¡¯s tears, she left silently. After a while, Mrs. Lewis wiped away her tears and calmed down before returning to the ward. Seeing her husband wanting to reprimand her son, and seeing his son¡¯s pale face, but unable to reprimand him, Mrs. Lewis sighed in her heart. Mrs. Lewis walked slowly back to the hospital bed and sat down. Looking at her son with an indifferent expression, she said softly after a long while, ¡°Liberty is gone.¡± Duncan¡¯s expression didn¡¯t change, and his voice was still as cold as before, ¡± Mom, don¡¯t let her appear in front of me in the future, and Serenity, I don¡¯t want to see her either, I don¡¯t want to see either of her sisters.¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes were sharp, if he saw Serenity, he was afraid that he would not be able to control himself. Alright, let Serenity saw through his real intentions. Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Duncan, I really don¡¯t me Liberty for this matter. It¡¯s all my fault. If you want to me or hate, just hate me. It was me who caused your car ident.¡± Duncan said arrogantly and unreasonably: ¡°I don¡¯t care, anyway, I don¡¯t want to see Liberty in the future!¡± Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Okay, okay, if you don¡¯t want to see her, don¡¯t see her. Duncan, don¡¯t get excited, and take care of your wounds.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s greatest concern at this time was that her son would notply with the subsequent treatment. Her son would be confined to a wheelchair for the rest of his life. Now no matter what her son said, she would agree. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. If he does not wish to see Liberty, he will not. However, Mrs. Lewis felt extremely ufortable. Before, she tried her best to prevent her son from seeing Liberty, but now she allowed the two to meet each other, but her son didn¡¯t want to see Liberty again. Chapter 1681 Chapter 1681 After Liberty left the hospital, she returned to her breakfast shop. ¡°Boss, you¡¯re back.¡± Seeing Liberty¡¯s return, the two shop assistants greeted her, then looked at her hesitantly. Liberty was absent-minded and didn¡¯t notice this. The business in the store was also busy, so the two shop assistants would work first, and then talked to the boss after thinking about it. But looking at the boss¡¯s absent-minded look, the two shop assistants guessed about the hot search. The boss¡¯s younger sister was also the eldest wife of the richest man¡¯s family, so the source of news was much faster than them. Liberty sat down in front of the cash register, what Duncan said was still echoing in her mind. He had a car ident, and she was also worried about him, but he med her on her head. Did she tell him toe to her? It¡¯s not her name. ¡°Sister.¡± A familiar voice was heard. Liberty looked up and saw her younger sister sitting down in front of her. She was so absent-minded that she didn¡¯t even notice that her younger sister wasing. Liberty: ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t you need to go back to the store?¡± Serenity: ¡°Jasmine is there. I will go to ourpany with Elisater. Jasmine is pregnant and it is not suitable for her to run back and forth, so she stays in the bookstore to look after the store.¡± Josh didn¡¯t want Jasmine to go to work, but Jasmine said that if he didn¡¯t even let her go back to the bookstore, she would follow Serenity back and forth to the vegetable market. Josh had no choice but to agree that she would go back to the bookstore to look around every day. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. It¡¯s not tiring to guard the bookstore. When she needed to move the goods, there were bodyguards. ¡°Elisa hasn¡¯te yet?¡± Liberty looked behind her sister, but she didn¡¯t see her cousin, so she asked. ¡°I called her just now, and she hasn¡¯t woken up yet, so I told her to wait for her at my sister¡¯s ce.¡± Serenity looked at the dark circles under her sister¡¯s eyes, and asked with concern: ¡°Sister, didn¡¯t you sleep wellst night? This morning you went out so early.¡± When Serenity and Zachary got up, Liberty was not at home. Serenity asked butler, and the butler said that Liberty had left the house early. Serenity guessed that Liberty went to the hospital to visit Duncan. Although Liberty didn¡¯t love Duncan, she had known him for nearly a year, and Duncan had helped a lot and Liberty regarded Duncan as a friend. ¡°It¡¯s a bit of insomnia. I couldn¡¯t sleep, so I got up. I went to the hospital to visit Mr. Lewis, Mr. Lewis¡­ He thought it was because of me that he had a car ident, let me go, and told Mrs. Lewis that I will never appear in front of him again in the future.¡± Liberty said in a low voice, ¡°Is this my fault? Being liked is also a mistake?¡± ¡°Sister!¡± Serenity reached out and held Liberty¡¯s hand, and said softly: ¡°Sister, don¡¯t think about it, Mr. Lewis always knew the truth about his injury, and it was hard to ept it for a while, so he did this. Not only did he not want to see you, but he also didn¡¯t want to see me.¡± ¡°Zachary and I also went to see him. He didn¡¯t see me, and didn¡¯t let Zachary enter the ward, he notified his bodyguards toe over, and stood guard at the door of the ward, and people he didn¡¯t want to see couldn¡¯t enter his ward at all.¡± Liberty was a little surprised, she said, ¡°Mr. Lewis and Zachary are gone?¡± Serenity nodded and said, ¡°He may think that we will sympathize with him. He doesn¡¯t want our sympathy. We don¡¯t sympathize with him, but we care about him. When he knew the injury, he was worried that he would be disabled and would be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life. He would not be able to ept it. He thought that all of us sympathized with him.¡± Liberty sighed, ¡°What Mr. Lewis said to me, I think he is the same.¡± Those hurtful words that Duncan said were not his sincere words. Liberty was very hurt when she heard it at the time, but after calming down and thinking about it now, she decided that it was not Duncan¡¯s truth. Chapter 1682 Chapter 1682 ¡°It¡¯s not sincere, don¡¯t take it to heart.¡± Serenity went to the hospital, and Duncan¡¯s father told the couple everything. She felt that this was not Duncan¡¯s sincerity. Duncan was just worried that he would be disabled and would be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life, and he didn¡¯t want everyone to sympathize with him. After a moment of silence, Liberty said, ¡°I hope Mr. Lewis will not give up on himself, and he can continue to do rehabilitation after he is discharged from the hospital, so that he can recover soon.¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Serenity looked at Liberty. Liberty: ¡°Is there anything else you want to talk to me?¡± Serenity: ¡°The matter of Mr. Lewis¡¯s car ident was on the hot search in Wiltspoon. Those people made wild guesses and involved my sister.¡± Liberty was stunned, took out her phone, opened it. After reading the local news, seeing the head of the Lewis & Co.¡¯s car ident was on the top searches, she clicked it to see. Serenity: ¡°Zachary made people suppress the ranking of the hot search, and he will withdraw from the hot search soon.¡± After reading it, Liberty said, ¡°I don¡¯t care, I¡¯m afraid this matter will affect the Lewis & Co.¡± Duncan¡¯s group was Duncan¡¯s personal property. He spoke loudly in thepany. Unlike Lewis & Co.¡¯s business, which was a family business, even if something happened to the head of the family, someone else would take over thepany. Something happened to Duncan. There were other high-level managers in hispany who take care of thepany. If it took a long time, it was easy to be unstable. They also worry that someone would have a wrong heart and did something that they¡¯re sorry for thepany while Duncan couldn¡¯t go back to thepany. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about this, Zachary is watching, and the Lewis family also arranged for the second young master Lewis to help Mr. Lewis stabilize thepany first.¡± The elder Young master Lewis was the head of Lewis¡¯s enterprise, he was busy, so it was difficult to be distracted To help the fourth brother, Duncan take over thepany, they could only arrange for the second young master Lewis to go there first. Under the observation of the York Corporation, nothing would happen to Lewis & Co. as long as at least one member of the Lewis family was in charge. ¡°Sister, don¡¯t take the media¡¯s random spections to heart, don¡¯t me yourself, think it¡¯s your responsibility.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Serenity was afraid that Liberty would think that way. Liberty: ¡°Serenity, don¡¯t worry about me, I won¡¯t think it¡¯s my fault.¡± Serenity felt relieved when she saw that Liberty didn¡¯t seem to be dealing with her. Serenity: ¡°The news from Mr. Lewis, I will pass it on to you when there is good news.¡± Liberty nodded, ¡°I hope Mr. Lewis will recover and be discharged from the hospital soon.¡± ¡°Serenity, if you are busy, go and do it. I will clean up for you. I will be off work again soon.¡± Liberty got up, walked out of the cash register, and was about to go to work on her. Serenity watched her sister go away, and said, ¡°I¡¯ll wait for Elisa here, and I¡¯ll leave when shees.¡± Liberty hummed, but didn¡¯t answer. Knowing that her sister was still worried about Duncan¡¯s injury, Serenity could only sigh inwardly. After Duncan was in a car ident, the people who were close friends with the Lewis family all went to the hospital to care and visit Duncan. Grandma naturally also went. Grandpa had always regarded Duncan as his grandson. When facing other people, Duncan didn¡¯t talk much, sometimes when others came, he happened to be sleeping. But when Grandma came, he wanted to talk to Grandma alone. When there were only Grandma and Duncan in the ward, he said to Grandma: ¡°Grandma, I know what you said before, if Liberty wants to remarry, you can match her up and let her marry a good man.¡± Chapter 1683 Chapter 1683 Grandma red, ¡°What? Lying here now, you lost confidence and wanted to push Liberty out?¡± Before Duncan could answer, his Grandma said to him again: ¡°Who do you think you are from Liberty? Her life is up to you to arrange? If you want to push her out, you also need to take her into yours first. In the world, you have the opportunity to push her out. You kid, you haven¡¯t even touched someone¡¯s little hand, you haven¡¯t even started, so why did you arrange it for him? Does it hurt here?¡± Grandma used a little force on his injured leg. Duncan: ¡°Grandma, it hurts, it hurts so much!¡± Duncan was a tough guy, he broke out in a cold sweat due to such pain. It¡¯s just that he kept holding back and didn¡¯t hum. In front of Grandma, he didn¡¯t have to build up his defenses. Grandma: ¡°Knowing the pain is a good thing. It proves that your legs are still conscious and will not be paralyzed. Of course, it will take a long time to recover after a hundred days of injury. After you can be discharged from the hospital, you can find a home for rehabilitation. Center, do a good job of rehabilitation, I believes that one day you will be able to walk as fast as before.¡± Duncan said sadly: ¡°Grandma, I am afraid that I will need a wheelchair for the rest of my life.¡± ¡°Now the doctors dare not say a word I insist that you will be in a wheelchair for the rest of your life. Are you worried that you will be a drag on Liberty if you are disabled, so you don¡¯t want to see Liberty, and even Zack is rejected by you. You still say those stupid things, You didn¡¯t catch up with Liberty in the first ce, but you made Liberty ufortable by saying those b@stard words, are you really nning to give up? I have been helping my family¡¯s unfilial grandchildren to find wives. During the search process, I also think that some young people are quite good. If I have granddaughters, I will match my granddaughter with one of them.¡± If you think you can really give up, then I will arrange for Liberty. One of the men is also divorced and has no children. He divorced because he was too busy to spend time with his wife when he started his business. It caused his wife to cheat and finally got divorced. Now that his business is stable and he has some time to talk about love, I think he is quite suitable for Liberty. He has also been divorced before, so don¡¯t worry about Liberty¡¯s Marriage.¡± Listening to Grandma¡¯s words, Duncan¡¯s face was as white as paper. He bit his lower lip tightly and didn¡¯t speak. Seeing his appearance, Grandma knew that he couldn¡¯t let Liberty go, but now that he was injured and worried that he would be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life, he said decisive words and wanted to push Liberty away. What a fool! He hadn¡¯t taken Liberty into his arms yet, so how could he have a chance to push Liberty away? He was not qualified to arrange future life for Liberty. After a while, Duncan said with difficulty: ¡°Grandma, how old is that person? Although Liberty has been divorced and has a child, she is still young, in her early thirties. If the other party is too old, she is not suitable for Liberty.¡± That boss, he¡¯s a little older than you, maybe ten years older than Liberty, he hurts people when he¡¯s older.¡± Duncan blushed anxiously, ¡°Grandma, he¡¯s a little too old.¡± Grandma: ¡°Worried? Worried? Since you can¡¯t let go, don¡¯t think about anything else, take good care of your injuries, and treat your legs well.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± Grandma: ¡°Duncan, I believe in you. You will get better, as long as you don¡¯t give up on yourself.¡± Duncan didn¡¯t speak. He was unsure whether he would be able to endure the pain of rehabilitation after being released from the hospital. Grandma: ¡°Have a good rest, I won¡¯t bother you anymore.¡± Duncan¡¯s mental state was still very poor, and his Grandma couldn¡¯t bear to disturb him to rest.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1684 Chapter 1684 Grandma stood, regarded him for a moment, sighed, and exited the ward. ¡­ Brown family. Jessica was lying on the sofa, watching with her mobile phone in her hand, with a happy expression on her face. Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. At this time, the door opened. It was Mrs. Brown who came back with Chelsea. Seeing Chelsea, the eldest sister, Jessica didn¡¯t have a good face. She¡¯d never seen such a shameless person. Chelsea didn¡¯t give Jessica a good face either, although Jessica and Hank moved back to the wedding room, of course all the decorations were changed, the original decoration was brought by Liberty to smash it up. They wouldn¡¯t be at peace if they hadn¡¯t rented a home. Chelsea waspletely unconcerned with herself. This was her second home, in her eyes. She was free toe and go as she pleased. She showed up without carrying anything. Shameless! Jessica quarreled with Chelsea how many times because of this. She thought that if she was pregnant, her husband¡¯s family would treat her as an ancestor, but she over-thought. Except for her mother-inw who restrained herself a little, Chelsea did not restrain herself at all. Jessica protested to Hank that if she was p!ssed off by Chelsea a few times, she would have a miscarriage. If there was no child, she would go back in and continue to ept unfinished legal punishment. ¡°Jessica, don¡¯t y with your phone all the time, it¡¯s not good for the baby.¡± When Mrs. Brown entered the room and saw her daughter-inw lying on the sofa ying with her mobile phone, she couldn¡¯t help but say something. This woman almost k!lled Liberty and her son, but after she went in, she found out that she was pregnant with her Brown family¡¯s child. When Hank helped Jessica apply for a sentence outside prison, Mrs. Brown was aggrieved. In the end, seeing that Jessica was pregnant with their Brown family¡¯s grandson, she endured it. ¡°I¡¯m watching the news together.¡± Jessica sat up and nced at Chelsea, ¡°Sister is here again, Mom, isn¡¯t sister married? Why does she run to her mother¡¯s house every three days? People who don¡¯t know think that sister Divorced and being driven back to her natal home by her inws.¡± ¡°Look at me, I seldom go back to my natal home, for fear of offending my sister-inw.¡± Chelsea said with a dark face, ¡°Do you dare to go back to your natal home? You still have your natal home to go back to. How much your natal family hates you and mes you, you know in your heart that they would like to publish in the newspaper and cut off ties with you, and would they wee you back to their natal family? I¡¯m different, my parents wee me back to my natal family. My younger brother won¡¯t say anything about me, my natal family, I can go back if I want. Sister-inw¡¯s dislike? How many years can she dislike me? She thinks she is pregnant, can she be pregnant for several years without giving birth? You cannot escape the punishment you receive.¡± Jessica: ¡°¡­¡± Chelsea¡¯s cheap mouth was really p!ssing Jessica off. Seeing that her mother-inw had no intention of helping her, Jessica sneered and said, ¡°I know you all want Hank to divorce me and remarry Liberty. If you want, then do that. Liberty is very hard-hearted. You didn¡¯t read the news, because of her, Mr. Lewis, who pursued her, had a car ident, and he may be disabled, and he will be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life. If you let Hank and Liberty remarry, who knows if Hank will be happy?¡± Hank will be able to get into a car ident, he is now an online car- hailing service.¡± Hearing Jessica¡¯s words, Mrs. Brown and Chelsea¡¯s expressions became ugly. Chapter 1685 Chapter 1685 Chelsea pointed at Jessica and scolded: ¡°You would have passed away a long time ago if it weren¡¯t for the fact that you are carrying the Brown family¡¯s seed in your womb. Just a big p in the face, I don¡¯t think Liberty can¡¯t cleavage, it¡¯s you Jessica who can. Mr. Lewis himself had a car ident, what¡¯s the matter with Liberty? Liberty didn¡¯t ept him, and he was going to find Liberty himself. It was obviously his mother who chased him. The car ident just happened, those media are talking nonsense, they deliberately involved Liberty in order to win attention, unscrupulous media.¡± Chelsea scolded Jessica without breath. Jessica didn¡¯t have a chance to speak even if she wanted to refute. Chelsea¡¯s voice was high, and the voice of scolding Jessica could be heard by the residents downstairs. However, people in thismunity had long regarded the Brown family as aughing stock, and they liked to gossip about the Brown family after dinner. After all, Liberty brought people to smash up the decoration of the house, causing a sensation in the wholemunity. Knowing that after Hank and Liberty divorced, mistress became regr, and also knew that mistress couldn¡¯t get along with her husband¡¯s family, and even broke thew, if she wasn¡¯t pregnant, she would still be in jail. After meals, Jessica frequently went for a walk in themunity, and people often gave her strange looks. Nobody in themunity wanted to deal with Jessica. When they saw Jessica, those who had children quickly grabbed their children and walked away. They would exin to their children that Jessica was like a human trafficker and to avoid her at all costs. ¡°Ever since you intervened in Hank and Liberty¡¯s marriage, Hank has had a rough time. It¡¯s all your fault. You¡¯re a b!tch, and you¡¯re ashamed to say Liberty. What right do you have to say Liberty? You hurt Liberty.¡± Liberty and Sonny are not miserable enough? Have you apologized to Liberty and Sonny until now? But, don¡¯t be toocent, when the girl in your stomaches out, you have to go in and continue to squat, wait If you re-enter, I will introduce a woman to Hank, let him divorce you, and let your daughter live under the hands of the stepmother!¡± Chelsea hated Jessica very much. Her little treasure was almost lost because of Jessica. If Serenity hadn¡¯t asked the bodyguards to rescue her little treasure, Chelsea would not have dared to think about the consequences. Therefore, since knowing that Jessica helped others to n and design this matter, Chelsea vowed never to make Jessica feel better. Jessica¡¯s face was ashen when she was scolded by Chelsea, ¡°Whoever said that I am carrying a son instead of a girl in my stomach has never met me. What I have is a son, and that is what I wanted to have!¡± What Jessica longed for most was to have a son. That way Sonny could bepared. She also knew that after giving birth, she would have to go in and squat, and the child would be taken care of by her husband¡¯s family. The child she had brought up would be especially fond of them. As long as hers was a son, she believed that the emotional bnce of the inws would be biased towards her son. Her husband¡¯s family never took care of Sonny, and they didn¡¯t have much affection for Sonny. It¡¯s just that Sonny was the only grandson of the Brown family, so the Brown family would pay attention to Sonny. Chelsea said: ¡°You are so vicious and want to have a son? You only have the role of a girl.¡± Jessica: ¡°You think it¡¯s great to have two kids? You can raise your two kids and let¡¯s talk about it. Raise them. It doesn¡¯t necessarily belong to you, there will be idents and illnesses, and you will lose your son in yourter years.¡± Before Jessica finished cursing, she was pped by Chelsea. Chelsea pped her hard, and Jessica got angry at cursing. She was unprepared, and received a solid p, she only felt the burning pain on the face where she was pped. ¡°Chelsea.¡± Mrs. Brown pretended to pull Chelsea, and said to her, ¡°Jessica has been vtile since she was pregnant. What are you doing with her?¡± Content from N?velDr(a)ma.Org. ¡°Mom, she cursed my two kids for an ident. What about two kids, aren¡¯t you angry?¡± Chelsea said angrily, ¡°What evil did our Brown family do to marry such a poisonous woman into the house.¡± Jessica: ¡°You are a poisonous woman, a top-quality poisonous woman! You curse that I can¡¯t have a son, I won¡¯t curse you and anyone.¡± Jessica scolded Chelsea, and when Chelsea was about to jump over to beat her again, she deliberately hugged her stomach and yelled: ¡°Mom, my stomach hurts, my stomach hurts, I was mad at her.¡± Chapter 1686 Chapter 1686 Mrs. Brown was also very angry, what Jessica cursed her two grandchildren just now was too poisonous. But seeing Jessica holding her stomach and screaming for pain, she hurried over to support Jessica, and said nervously, ¡°Sit down quickly, or go back to the room and lie down.¡± ¡°Mom, she¡¯s just making it look like she¡¯s hurt.¡± Chelsea didn¡¯t believe that Jessica¡¯s stomach hurt at all. ¡°Chelsea.¡± Mrs. Brown said to her daughter, and helped Jessica back to the room, andy down on the bed. She saw that her daughter-inw¡¯s face was swollen from the daughter¡¯s beating, and she was worried that Hank would see her when he came back, so she said to Jessica: ¡°Jessica, I¡¯lle in and get some ice to help you apply it to your face.¡± Jessica touched her face, but didn¡¯t speak. Mrs. Brown went out to help her get ice cubes. Jessica was lying on the bed, thinking of her current life, she was so wronged that tears flowed down her face. But this was the path she chose. Who told her to intervene in Hank and Liberty¡¯s marriage? Now, she couldn¡¯t go back to her mother¡¯s house, and she was wronged every day when she stayed at her husband¡¯s house. She had a top-notch eldest sister and partial parents-inw. She was about to copse. If it wasn¡¯t for having a child in her belly, Jessica wouldn¡¯t be able to survive. This child saved her from going to jail for the time being. Jessica was still very protective of the child, for fear of being harmed by Chelsea. Suddenly, Jessica sat up from the bed. She wanted to go to the bathroom. Mrs. Brown came in with ice cubes at this time. ¡°Jessica, where are you going?¡± Mrs. Brown asked. ¡°Go to the bathroom.¡± Jessica entered the bathroom with her mobile phone. Mrs. Brown sat down on the bed and waited for her. Jessica sent a message to Hank in the bathroom andined to Hank. Hank had just received an order to take a passenger to the airport, and after rifying with his wife, he stopped replying to Jessica. Not getting a reply from her husband, Jessica scolded: ¡°Useless stuff, how could I like a man like you in the first ce!¡± She changed to watching videos. The video became addictive as soon as she scrolled, she squatted in the bathroom for half an hour. After squatting for a long time, her legs were numb. When she came out, she identally kicked the threshold of the bathroom, and she jumped forward. Seeing this scene, Mrs. Brown instinctively got up and rushed over to help Jessica, but unfortunately she was two steps toote.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Jessica fell to the ground. ¡°Jessica.¡± Mrs. Brown was frightened and quickly helped her up. After Jessica was lifted up, Mrs. Brown hurriedly asked her, ¡°Does your stomach hurt?¡± Jessica shook her head, feeling no stomach pain for the time being. Chapter 1687 Chapter 1687 But not long after, Jessica¡¯s expression changed, she grabbed Mrs. Brown¡¯s hand, and said in fear, ¡°Mom, I have a stomachache.¡± Hearing this, Mrs. Brown immediately rushed outside and shouted: ¡°Chelsea, call 120 right away because her stomach hurts.¡± Chelsea was biting an apple, and when she heard her mother¡¯s cry, she swayed over, leaned against the door of the room, and said, ¡°Mom, she canin of a stomachache eight hundred times a day, don¡¯t believe it.¡± calling 120 now, that¡¯s a waste of medical resources, let¡¯s save it for those who need it more.¡± ¡°Jessica fell just now!¡± Mrs. Brown yelled, ¡°Hurry up and call an ambnce.¡± Chelsea saw Jessica lying on the bed in pain, so she believed it was true, and hurriedly called an ambnce. ¡­¡­ It¡¯s 4 o¡¯clock in the afternoon. All You Can Eat was not like usual, the store was closed at noon. Today, the store doors were open all day. Liberty apanied Sonny to watch cartoons in the store. The two shop assistants had already left work, and asionally someone woulde in and want to eat, and Liberty would also cook for the guests. At the moment, there were no customers in the shop, Sonny was enjoying watching cartoons, and Liberty was making dumplings beside him. The ss door was pushed open. Liberty looked over. What she saw was Chelsea who hadn¡¯t appeared in front of her for a long time. ¡°Auntie.¡± Seeing Chelseaing in, Sonny called out for Auntie. Chelsea walked over with a smile, hugged Sonny, ¡°Sonny is watching cartoons.¡± Sonny nodded. Chelsea put down her nephew and handed the bag of fruit she bought to Liberty. Liberty took the bag of fruit and said, ¡°Sister, whenever youe, there is no need to buy anything.¡± Chelsea: ¡°I¡¯ming to see my nephew, and I always want to buy something delicious for my nephew.¡± Chelsea waited for Liberty to put it away, returned to the table and sat down to make dumplings. She couldn¡¯t wait to go over and sit down, and told Liberty: ¡°Liberty, I have some news for you. The poisonous woman, Jessica had a miscarriage.¡± N?velDrama.Org content rights. Liberty looked at her. Jessica had a miscarriage? Jessica had been pregnant for three months, and the pregnancy was stable. The miscarriage rate was not as high as the previous three months. Why did she have a miscarriage? Being looked at by Liberty like this, Chelsea couldn¡¯t help but said: ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t look at me like this, it¡¯s not my fault. Although I don¡¯t like her a hundred times and I usually quarrel with her, I also won¡¯t hit her in the stomach. Anyway, that child is also my brother¡¯s seed. Even if I can¡¯t help but p her.¡± Chelsea exined: ¡°It¡¯s her who went to the bathroom. ying with the mobile phone in the bathroom, squatting for too long, her legs were numb, she identally kicked the threshold when she came out, fell down, and caused a miscarriage, this is her reason, and it has nothing to do with me.¡± Well, it did have some connection to it. If she hadn¡¯t picked on Jessica, argued with her, and even pped her, Jessica¡¯s mother wouldn¡¯t have helped her get back to her room, and maybe this wouldn¡¯t have happened. Chapter 1688 Chapter 1688 Of course, Chelsea refused to admit that this matter had anything to do with her. It was Jessica who was poisonous, cursed Hank, and even cursed her two kids, and suffered retribution. Jessica¡¯s belly was a boy, and after the flow out, it was known that it was a boy, and Mrs. Brown and Jessica cried to death. Chelsea also felt ufortable for a while, and soon she didn¡¯t care. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Who told Jessica to have such a poisonous mouth, cursing that her two kids would not grow up, even if they were raised, there would be idents or something, no, the ident happened, it happened to Jessica. Chelsea firmly believed that this was retribution! ¡°Liberty, you don¡¯t even know how poisonous that Jessica is. She saw the news and knew that Mr. Lewis had a car ident. The unscrupulous media spected wildly and included you in it. Jessica said you were dev!l, because Mr. Lewis likes you, so you got Mr. Lewis into a car ident. You also mocked us for wanting Hank to remarry you, saying that if you remarried, Hank would be in a car ident because of you, saying that Hank is now opening car-hailing service online who book a car are the most likely to have a car ident. Tell me, is this woman poisonous?¡± Chelsea also repeated to Liberty the original words of Jessica cursing her two kids. Afterwards, she said: ¡°I didn¡¯t keep the child. I can¡¯t say I was gloating, but I really think this is the retribution of Jessica. She is too poisonous. I couldn¡¯t see it before. She is so poisonous. She is simply a poisonous woman. In thatmunity, no one is willing to associate with Jessica. When children see her, they will stay far away, for fear of being harmed by her.¡± Liberty, don¡¯t worry about the news. If you belonged to dev!l, Hank would still be fine? Hank only had a sessful career when he was with you, but when he was with Jessica, he would not be fine. It¡¯s obviously dev!l is Jessica, she¡¯s hard-fated, and she¡¯s not going to give birth to a good boy.¡± Regarding Jessica¡¯s miscarriage, Liberty didn¡¯t take pleasure in other¡¯s misfortune, she said tly: ¡°The media can write whatever they want, I didn¡¯t take it to heart.¡± As for the matter of her dev!l, theparison between Hank before and after the divorce could be seen by anyone with a discerning eye. ¡°Oh!¡± Chelsea sighed heavily. Looking at Liberty making dumplings, Liberty, who had sessfully lost weight, paid great attention to skin care. She looked as young and beautiful as when she first met Liberty. Chelsea regretfully said: ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s all our fault. Hank and your family have been tossed away by us.¡± Liberty said indifferently: ¡°Isn¡¯t it also your credit that his life is so miserable.¡± Chelsea choked. Her nature was hard to change. She couldn¡¯t change her tossing temper. After a while, Chelsea changed the subject and asked Liberty: ¡°How is Mr. Lewis¡¯s injury? I heard that he has be disabled and will be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life.¡± In this case, Duncan would not pursue Liberty again? Jessica had a miscarriage, and when she conceived, she would definitely go back to the prison. At that time, they would let Hank and Jessica divorce again, and then pursue Liberty again. Leaving aside the fact that Liberty was backed by two men, just because Liberty now ran a breakfast restaurant and the business was still good, it had a bright future. After the young couple remarried, they ran the breakfast restaurant together, so Hank didn¡¯t need to go out every day to drive online car-hailing. After going through too much, afterparing before and after, as long as Liberty and Hank remarry, their family would cherish the blessings and won¡¯t make any troubles. Liberty stopped making dumplings, looked at Chelsea, and asked, ¡°Who said Mr. Lewis is disabled? Who said he will be in a wheelchair in his next life? Mr. Lewis will get better, don¡¯t believe other people¡¯s nonsense.¡± At theend, she added: ¡°Don¡¯t even think about remarrying me and your brother, it will be impossible for me and him in this life.¡± Liberty didn¡¯t turn back! Chapter 1689 Chapter 1689 Chelsea smiled sheepishly, looked at Sonny twice, and said: ¡°Sonny must have a father.¡± Liberty: ¡°Doesn¡¯t Sonny have a father now? No matter how my rtionship with Hank is, he is Sonny¡¯s father. This is a fact that will never be erased.¡± Chelsea: ¡°No, no, I said the wrong thing, I think Sonny can only be happy if he grows up in a healthy family. I think Sonny is very happy now, and he is always happy at any time. Before, his father was busy going to work every day, busy with other Women y, and he hadn¡¯t been with him much, and now hees to see him asionally, what¡¯s the difference from before?¡± Liberty: ¡°Sonny has already adapted to the days without his father¡¯spany. With me and Serenity apanying him, he Carefree, happy and healthy growth.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chelsea was speechless. She also knew that it was useless to talk about Sonny. Their family had never given up, and they had said countless times in front of Liberty, but there was always a result. For Hank, he regretted it, but he knew Liberty well, and knew that even if he turned around and pursued Liberty again, there would be no advantage. Liberty said to Chelsea: ¡°If you are really good for Hank, stop meddling in the affairs of your natal family in the future, stop speaking ill of your sister-inw in front of your parents, and stop picking apart people, then his little life will gradually get better, otherwise you will change a hundred sister-inw are all the same result. I don¡¯t know what you think, you have just a younger brother, and your parents are getting old. When your parents are a hundred years old, who will entertain them when you return to your inws¡¯s house? It¡¯s your brother, is it? Your sister-inw, you are making such a fuss now, are you nning to stop returning to your natal family after a hundred years from your parents? When you have a sister-inw, it¡¯s best not to interfere in the marriage of your natal brother, don¡¯t talk so much, and don¡¯t unite with your parents to target your sister-inw, and make your brother divorce once. Are you happy? How many more times do you want your brother to get divorced? You have a son and a daughter yourself, your daughter is in her teens, and after ten or eight years she will get married. At that time, your daughter would often go back to her mother¡¯s house to make troubles and alienate her younger brother and sister-inw, what do you think?¡± Chelsea: ¡°Liberty, are you trying to speak up for Jessica? She is so vicious. So bad, I almost took my little treasure away, I hated her so much, I swore I didn¡¯t want her to have a better life.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not saying good things for Jessica, I¡¯m pointing out the real problem. Back then, Hank and I get to the point of divorce, isn¡¯t it due to your contribution? What happened to Jessica is the result of the choice she made in the first ce. What you sow results in what you nt, and you can¡¯t me others.¡± Chelsea blushed and was speechless. After a long while, she said: ¡°Liberty, I went to buy something and then went back to the hospital. I told my mother to buy something and left the hospital. There is no one to take care of that poisonous woman now. Besides me and my mother, who cares about her?¡± After Chelsea finished speaking, she hurried away without waiting for Liberty to speak again. After watching her aunt leave, Sonny walked over to Liberty and asked, ¡°Mom, what is Auntie doing here?¡± Liberty: ¡°Auntie didn¡¯t do anything, Auntie just came to see you.¡± Sonny snorted without doubting her mother¡¯s words. Because his aunt treated him a lot better, at least she won¡¯t bring brother Lucas over to snatch his things. Jessica had a miscarriage, and it was estimated that she would be punished by thew again soon. For this, Liberty really did not sympathize with Jessica at all. She persuaded Chelsea like that just now, and she didn¡¯t know if Chelsea would listen to it. Based on her understanding of Chelsea, she probably wouldn¡¯t listen to divorce from Jessica. Jessica chose Hank as a married man at the beginning, and she hade to today step by step. She had her natal family and couldn¡¯t go back. Her parents, brothers and sisters-inw all med her. It¡¯s hard for her inw¡¯s family to stay any longer, she just yed a good hand of cards badly. In fact, Jessica was still capable at work, and she was young and beautiful. If she hadn¡¯t taken the wrong step of not getting involved in other people¡¯s marriages, not being a mistress, but choosing to stay away from Hank and marry a single man, her life would definitely be different. It could only be said that Jessica wanted to settle down and take root in the city because of Hank¡¯s status at the beginning. She had no rtionship with Hank at first, but when Hank and Liberty had a serious quarrel, she had a rtionship with Hank. Chapter 1690 Chapter 1690 It clearly made Hankpletely biased towards her. Now that she hade to this point, it was her own fault, and she was not worthy of sympathy. ¡°Mom, why didn¡¯t Uncle Duncane today?¡± Sonny asked his mother. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Remembering that he went to see Uncle Duncan in the hospital with his mother yesterday, he asked again: ¡°Mom, is Uncle Duncan still recovering?¡± Uncle Duncan said that he would recover soon. Sonny thought that Uncle Duncan would recover today. Liberty said softly: ¡°Uncle Duncan will be healed after a while, Sonny, are you missed Uncle Duncan?¡± Sonny nodded. He was used to seeing Duncan every day, but suddenly he couldn¡¯t see him one day, and he felt very ufortable. ¡°Mom, can you take me to the hospital to visit Uncle Duncan?¡± Liberty thought that Duncan didn¡¯t want to see her, but she didn¡¯t say she didn¡¯t want to see Sonny. She was also concerned about Duncan¡¯s injury, even though she was kicked out of Duncan¡¯s ward early in the morning, A day had not yet passed, and she felt that it had passed for a long time. She hoped Duncan could recover soon. Liberty: ¡°Okay, mom will take you to the hospital to visit Uncle Duncan.¡± Sonny was very happy. Liberty put the unfinished dumplings back into the freezer, cleaned up briefly, and left the breakfast shop with Sonny. Sonny said to her, ¡°Mom, I want to buy a bouquet of flowers for Uncle Duncan.¡± Sonny remembered that when his mother was in the hospital, everyone would send a bouquet of flowers to his mother when he came to visit. He thought that as long as he went to the hospital to visit others, he would buy a bouquet of flowers. ¡°Okay.¡± Liberty agreed to his son. She drove her son straight to Spring Blossoms, and bought a bunch of flowers from Camryn. ¡°Sister Liberty.¡± When Liberty was about to leave, Camryn quickly stopped Liberty, and she said, ¡°Sister Liberty, I just asked someone to buy some supplements, and I wanted someone to send them to Mr. Lewis In general, if you go to the hospital now, can you help me bring these supplements to Mr. Lewis? I thought about going there by myself, but I can¡¯t see and it¡¯s inconvenient to go out, so I have to ask you.¡± Camryn and Duncan had no friendship, but the Lewis family and the York family had a very deep friendship, and Callum called Duncan to be his brother, and now she represented the Newman family, and she wanted to establish diplomatic rtions with the big families in Wiltspoon, not only for Callum¡¯s sake, but also because of her desire to make friends, so Camryn bought these supplements. ¡°Why don¡¯t you go to the hospital with us?¡± Liberty suggested. Chapter 1691 Chapter 1691 Camryn: ¡°I can only go out when someone is looking at the store.¡± Since she wanted tomunicate with the Lewis family, it was more sincere to go by herself. She called the clerk on her old phone, and the clerk answered quickly. ¡°Boss, I¡¯m back at the door.¡± The clerk smiled, then she hung up the phone, parked the electric car, and entered the store. Seeing Liberty and Sonny, they greeted each other with a smile and hugged Sonny. Sonny believed that he was extremely adorable, just like a flower in bloom. Camryn asked the clerk for a few words, took some supplements, and then she and Liberty and Sonny visited Duncan at the hospital. When they arrived at the hospital, Duncan still refused to see Liberty. Hearing Duncan¡¯s words that he didn¡¯t want to see Liberty, Camryn was stunned. Not only did he not see Liberty, but even his favorite and beloved Sonny, so the bodyguards of the Lewis family had to obey Duncan¡¯s words and prevent Liberty and Sonny from entering the ward. Sonny was puzzled, and shouted at Uncle Duncan at the door, but after he called several times, Uncle Duncan wouldn¡¯t let him in. Only Camryn entered the ward under Mrs. Lewis¡¯s leadership. Camryn had no friendship with Duncan, and she couldn¡¯t see him. She said some caring words in the ward, left supplements, and came out.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Mrs. Lewis looked at her son on the hospital bed, and persuaded her distressedly: ¡°Duncan, don¡¯t you want to see Liberty and Sonny? Didn¡¯t you say you like Sonny the most? Sonny is a child who doesn¡¯t understand anything. If you look like this, Sonny might think you don¡¯t like him anymore.¡± Duncan closed his eyes and didn¡¯t speak. Although his Grandma scolded him, Duncan was still very conflicted. He didn¡¯t know what to do next. Seeing that her son didn¡¯t want to talk, Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes turned red again. It was her fault. It¡¯s all her fault! She quietly asked the doctor, how much hope was there for Duncan¡¯s leg injury to recover as a normal person? how much time was required? ording to the doctor, there was still hope, but it mostly depended on the patient¡¯s willingness to cooperate with the therapy and his ability to persevere through rehabilitation. This was a mental test, and it was unclear how long it would take. After listening to the doctor¡¯s words, Mrs. Lewis¡¯s heart sank to the bottom of the valley. From the moment her son knew about his injury, she saw self-abandonment from him. When other people came to visit, except for talking to his Grandma, Duncan basically didn¡¯t talk much. Anyone who saw Duncan could tell that he was depressed and lost confidence in the future. However,he was unwilling to see Liberty, and Mrs. Lewis was still thinking that her son liked Liberty so much. After her son was discharged from the hospital, she would ask Liberty to apany him in his rehabilitation, so that his son could persevere and recover faster. Well! Mrs. Lewis thought regretfully, if time could go back, she would definitely not stop her son from pursuing Liberty. ¡­¡­ Annenburg. FC Manor. Tim helped Lilian Carden out of the house, but she felt that Tim helped her to walk, and she was ufortable walking. Throwing away Tim¡¯s hand, she said, ¡°I can still stand on a ne for several hours without your support. You help me walk like this, making me feel like I am a sick person.¡± Tim said: ¡°You have a big belly and you are going down the steps again. I will help you down the steps safely. I am so considerate, but you still dislike my consideration.¡± Lilian: ¡°Okay, okay, you are considerate, I don¡¯t despise you.¡± Chapter 1692 Chapter 1692 Lilian smiled and squeezed Tim¡¯s face. Because of her big belly, the wedding of the two of them would not be held for the time being, and the marriage certificate would be obtained first. Both Jane and Iris gave birth, and the little thing in her belly will be reported soon. Jane was pregnant with twins, so the baby would report in advance, otherwise the little thing in her belly would be the same as Jane¡¯s. The child was about the same age. Now that Jane had unloaded the goods, she still had to have a big belly every day, like a big watermelon stuffed in her stomach. The little baby was very naughty, and the fetus moved violently. Sometimes she could see little feet or little hands arching her belly into a small bag. Tim now liked teasing the baby the most. Every night when the fetus was moving the most, the father and son were ying through her belly. Lilian had known for a long time that she was carrying a baby boy. She was a doctor, and a good one at that. Tim¡¯s face turned dark, and he didn¡¯t like Lilian pinching his face all the time. However, he didn¡¯t pat Lilian¡¯s presumptuous big hand away. When Lilian gave him the antidote, it was because of his face that their child could inherit his good genes because he was good-looking. Tim apanied Lilian for a walk in the vi. Lilian used to fly around frequently to see patients, so she couldn¡¯t be free. After returning to FC Manor and bing the Fourth Young Mistress, everyone regarded her as a national treasure. She was extremely boring, but she had a big belly, and it was difficult to run outside, so she had to grab Tim and let Tim apany her for a walk in the vi. FC Manor was big and had nice views, which was a good thing. Every time she walked around the vi, she was attracted to the beautiful scenery. The butler came over and said, ¡°Mr. Johnson, Ms. Carden, the second young master of the York family, Mr. Callum is here again.¡± Callum always ran to FC Manor these two days, and he could run three or four times a day. N?velDrama.Org content rights. Hearing this, Tim looked displeased, and said, ¡°Did you not make it clear to him? I repeatedly informed him that Lilian was pregnant and that she was unable to see the patient at this time, so he could either hire another person or stay and wait. He must have noticed Dr. Carden¡¯srge belly. It won¡¯t help even if he stays in my FC Manor. Why can¡¯t he just ignore my baby and take care of his fianc¨¦e¡¯s eyes?¡± Tim was very dissatisfied with Callum who came three or four times a day. . Although Lilian was in good health, and now she looked like a normal person with a big belly, if she was really asked to see a patient, she could go, but Tim was worried. Annenburg and Wiltspoon were so far apart, it took several hours to fly there. Even if the York family could dispatch a private jet to pick her up, Tim refused Callum¡¯s repeated requests for his wife. Callum loved his fianc¨¦e dearly, and hoped for his fianc¨¦e¡¯s well-being. Didn¡¯t Tim love his wife? Didn¡¯t expect his wife to be good? As if she couldn¡¯t hear her husband¡¯sints, Lilian said to the butler, ¡°Allow Mr. Callum to enter, please and sincerely, hees here several times a day. The visitors are our guests. If you don¡¯t invite them in, it¡¯s because we don¡¯t treat guests well.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t FC & Co. and the York Corporation doing business? There are a lot of banknotes, and you have to treat Mr. Callum.¡± Tim was very upset, but Lilian had a good impression of Callum. Callum and his fianc¨¦e were not actually engaged yet, but he unterally regarded her as his fianc¨¦e. He wasn¡¯t worried at all that if the woman¡¯s eyes were cured, she might not marry him. He was really doing good things for that woman, even if he might not get anything in return, he wanted to heal her eyes. Callum had been going to FC Manor three or four times a day in the past two days. He didn¡¯t know that Lilian was not suitable for visiting the doctor. He hoped that Lilian could help him toe forward and invite the genius doctor toe over. Post navigation Chapter 1694 Chapter 1694 Chapter 1694 But now Lilian had a big belly, and when she went out for a prenatal checkup, Tim had to bring a few bodyguards to follow her to take care of her. Callum hurriedly said: ¡°Fourth Young Master Johnson, I know that even if Dr. Carden agrees to treat my fiancee¡¯s eyes, I would not dare to let Dr. Carden go out.¡± Callum looked at Lilian and begged, ¡°Dr. Carden can you help me? I can pay for it no matter how much it costs, and I can agree to any terms.¡± Dr. Carden was very good, and the miracle doctor was even more superb. After all, he was a master, and the name of the miracle doctor had been passed down. After decades, being able to be conferred by the gods proved to be a really powerful person. If Callum could invite miracle doctor toe and help Camryn¡¯s eyes to be cured, then the chances of being cured were very high. The miracle doctor and Lilian, master and apprentice, were Camryn¡¯sst hope. Callum promised to Camryn that he would seek a miracle doctor to cure her eyes so that she could see again. Even if Camryn couldn¡¯t restore the light, she won¡¯t despise him. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. It¡¯s just that Callum didn¡¯t dislike her, but Camryn had a sense of inferiority. No matter how good Callum was to her, no matter how much he promised, it¡¯s useless. Camryn always had a sense of inferiority, felt that she was not worthy of him, and was unwilling to ept his feelings. Seeing that half of the one-year deadline given by grandma had passed, Callum was really in a hurry. He couldn¡¯t force Camryn into the Civil Affairs Bureau to obtain a certificate when the time limit expired, right? That was called forced marriage and no one in the York family had ever tried to marry by force. He couldn¡¯t break precedent. When it came to matters involving genius doctors, Tim was not easy to answer. He was the son-inw of an apprentice who had be a genius doctor, but he couldn¡¯t and did not dare to treat the genius doctor. Lilian said apologetically: ¡°Mr. Callum, my master is old and has been out of clinic for a long time, and the has not been here for the past two days, so I¡¯m sorry.¡± Her master was now very particr about fate in treating patients. The old genius doctor believed that anyone who was in a rtionship with someone else could provide care for no charge. He brought a lot of money to find him if he didn¡¯t want to be treated, but the old genius doctor didn¡¯t even nce at it. The most important thing the master and apprentice need was money. ¡°Mr. Callum, I promise you, after I give birth, I will help your fianc¨¦e¡¯s eyes as soon as possible. I have heard your fianc¨¦e is blind due to poisoning, and she can barely see people. I¡¯m sure she can walk around; the chance of recovering her eyesight is 100%. Don¡¯t worry, just wait for two or three months, and I can treat your fianc¨¦e¡¯s eyes. Even if I haven¡¯t seen your fianc¨¦e yet, I dare Speaking of poison-rted matters, I know better than many people, and I¡¯m 99% sure that I can cure your fianc¨¦e¡¯s eyes.¡± Callum went to FC Manor three or four times a day, but he did not see the old genius doctor, Knowing that Lilian would not lie to him. If he couldn¡¯t ask for a doctor¡¯s visit, then he could only ask Lilian to go to Wiltspoon to treat Camryn¡¯s eyes after Lilian gave birth and confinement. ¡°Thank you, Dr. Carden.¡± Callum thanked gratefully. He heard that it would cost a lot of money to invite Lilian. ¡°Dr. Carden, What conditions do you have? Just ask, I will meet your conditions right now, and then wait for two or three months.¡± Lilian smiled and said: ¡°My husband¡¯spany has business dealings with York Corporation. Your elder brother and sister-inw are friends with my brother and sister-inw, and my fifth brother has even closer contacts with you. I can¡¯t close the war because of these things. It¡¯s the second young master¡¯s money.¡± She promised: ¡°I will treat the eyes of your fianc¨¦e for free, without any conditions.¡± Callum was extremely grateful. Chapter 1695 Chapter 1695 Chapter 1695 Having received Lilian¡¯s promise, Callum felt relieved. It¡¯s not good for Callum to stay in FC Manor anymore, Tim didn¡¯t like to see him very much at the moment. Callum also knew the whole story of Tim and Lilian from his eldest brother. At first, Lilian only wanted children and not men. Knowing that Tim had been looking for someone, Lilian didn¡¯t say that she was the one he was looking for. And ran away. She didn¡¯t even attend Jane Murphy and Young¨CJohnson¡¯s wedding. When Tim knew that Lilian was the girl he was looking for, he left his job and flew to Lilian¡¯s side desperately. After staying by Lilian¡¯s side for more than half a year, Lilian was willing to follow him back to Annenburg. What Tim did and how much he paid in those six months was unknown to outsiders. But it could be imagined that it was very difficult for Tim to win Lilian¡¯s heart, and they finally became husband and wife. Although they were still newlyweds without a wedding, what Tim liked most was to be with his newlywed wife. Callum came to disturb the young couple twice in three days, it¡¯s no wonder Tim gave him a good face. Not letting anyone threw him out was Tim¡¯s self-cultivation. After Callum thanked him, he got up to say goodbye and left FC Manor. Tim asked the butler to send Callum out of the vi. After Callum left, Tim heaved a sigh of relief and said, ¡°Finally send him away. Within two or three months, we should be able to have peace of mind.¡± Lilianughed and said: ¡°If he didn¡¯t want to ask my master to visit him, he would never have the cheek to run three or four times a day. However, I admire him, a man who doesn¡¯t want to be shameless for the one he loves. He is full of sincerity.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Tim: ¡°I can do it too.¡± Lilian smiled and said, ¡°I see, you are the best, you are the best among them.¡± Tim pulled her up, hugged her out of the gazebo, and said, ¡°Just now After eating so much, I¡¯ll take a walk with you to digest food.¡± Lilian: ¡°Are you disgusted that I can eat? It¡¯s nothing. How could I not like that you can eat? If you eat enough for two people to digest, just eat more.¡± Lilian raised her hand and pinched his face lightly. Tim was the one with the best hand feeling among the men she had ever touched. Of course, she touched the skin of other men when she performed surgery on those men. Tim: ¡°I know you are thinking about your child. When your son is born, you will take care of him. Okay, I will take care of him. I will be the baby daddy.¡± Tim was what she said. Unexpectedly, in the future, when the son cried, both the husband and wife wanted to be deserters. ¡­¡­ After Callum left FC Manor, he didn¡¯t leave Annenburg immediately. He also wanted to visit FC & Co. on behalf of York Corporation. After all, the two groups had business contacts. In this way, he stayed in Annenburg for ten years before returning to Wiltspoon. When Callum returned to Wiltspoon, Duncan¡¯s injuries, except for his legs, healed well. It¡¯s just that Duncan¡¯s mental state was very bad, mainly because of his mentality. Callum found that Duncan couldn¡¯t walk now, even when he was sitting up, just moving his legs would bring him excruciating pain, which made him afraid to even sit up, let alone walk on the ground. Knowing that Duncan had a car ident, Callum went to the hospital with Zachary and Serenity to visit Duncan the day after he returned to Wiltspoon. Although Duncan didn¡¯t want to see the Liberty sisters, and often shut Zachary out, they still cared about Duncan health very much. Whenever they were free, Zachary and his wife would go to the hospital every day. Chapter 1696 Chapter 1696 Seeing the brothers from the York familying over, the bodyguards of the Lewis family felt a headache. ¡°Young Master York.¡± The bodyguard of the Lewis family stepped forward boldly and blocked the way of the three of Zachary. He said apologetically, ¡°Young Master York, our Young Master doesn¡¯t want to see you yet, please leave first and don¡¯t make it difficult for him.¡± Zachary said softly: ¡°Tell young master that we¡¯reing here to see him.¡± The bodyguard: ¡°Sir and Madam are still coaxing the fourth young master Lewis to eat, and the fourth young master Lewis is in an extremely bad mood at the moment.¡± The bodyguard said these words,and he hoped that Zachary and others would leave on their own initiative, and didn¡¯t make it difficult for them. In fact, what they hoped most was that Duncan would be willing to meet his friends, and not lie on the hospital bed all day long. It¡¯s a pity that Duncan, who didn¡¯t even listen to the words of his father and mother, was even less likely to listen to their persuasion. Duncan had been lying on the bed for more than ten days, and his mentality had already copsed. He was looking forward to standing up immediately and walking like a normal person, so that he would no longer have to lie in bed and be taken care of. He didn¡¯t want to see anyone else either, he always felt that when others came to visit him, there was sympathy in their eyes. He was disabled and couldn¡¯t walk. Even putting him in a wheelchair made him ufortable. The doctor said that he would have to lie down for a while, as his leg injury healed a bit, and sitting in a wheelchair would not be so ufortable, but if he wanted to recover like a normal person, he still needed to stay for a long time, and he had to continue to do rehabilitation. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. ¡°I don¡¯t want to eat, I don¡¯t have an appetite, take it away, take it away!¡± Duncan¡¯s roar came from the ward. Immediately afterwards, the bowl and chopsticks were knocked over and fell to the ground with a loud noise. They didn¡¯t need to go in and look to know that Duncan lost his temper and knocked over the bowl in his mother¡¯s hand. Mrs. Lewis wanted to feed her son breakfast herself, but the bowl and chopsticks were knocked over and fell to the ground. The bowl was smashed, and the food in the bowl fell on the bed and the floor. ¡°Duncan.¡± Mr. Lewis raised his hand high in anger, but in the end he put it down weakly, and put on a pleading tone: ¡°Duncan, if you don¡¯t eat something, your nutrition and physical strength won¡¯t keep up. How can you get better? Look at your mother, since your ident until now, she has been around you every day, and her hair is all white.¡± Because of proper maintenance and frequent beauty treatments, Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯t have much gray hair before. Now, it¡¯s really gray haired. ¡°Husband, don¡¯t me Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis brought paper towels and a trash can, wiped off the food spilled on the bed, and cleaned up the floor. It was she who made her son unable to walk while lying on the bed, and she insisted on taking care of him herself. As far as the son¡¯s violent temper was now, except for their parents who could tolerate it, it was difficult for others to tolerate it. ¡°I¡¯m not hungry, I can¡¯t eat, I lie here every day like a living dead, I don¡¯t exercise, I can¡¯t digest, I¡¯m not hungry at all, I can¡¯t eat, how many times have I told you, don¡¯t send me any more I can¡¯t eat so much food! Do you think I¡¯m the same Duncan who can eat two big bowls of rice in one meal?¡± Duncan overturned the bowl and asked his mother to clean it up because he felt that he was wrong, but he just couldn¡¯t help it and couldn¡¯t control his emotions. After being used by his father, he yelled at his parents, and his words were full of his despair about his current situation. Chapter 1697 Chapter 1697 Duncan was a tall, rough-looking man. After lying in the hospital for more than ten days, he lost a lot of weight. Those who care about him would feel ufortable as long as they saw him now. He couldn¡¯t stand up, and he lost his former vigor. Even the eyes were no longer the brilliance of the past, and some were desperate. The doctor also stated at the beginning that his ability to fully recover wouldrgely depend on his ability to reim his confidence, persevere in treating his legs, and engage in rehabilitation. It¡¯s a long way. It was possible to go day after day without making any progress, which was especially easy to break down. ¡°Husband, don¡¯t me Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis persuaded her husband, ¡°It¡¯s my fault. Duncan said he wasn¡¯t hungry anymore, so I insisted on feeding him.¡± Mrs. Lewis took all the faults on herself go. Duncan looked at his mother, and suddenly looked away, unable to look at his mother again. Although it was his mother who thought he was going to see Liberty and intended to stop him, causing his car ident, in fact, the bigger fault was on him. He was driving too fast, so in case of an emergency, even if he braked suddenly Or rear-end someone else¡¯s car. It was a blessing not to die. The bodyguard came in and stood there for a long time before he dared toe over and asked Duncan softly, ¡°Fourth Young Master, Second Young Master york, Callum came to see you.¡± He dared not say that Zachary was here. Callum had not been in Wiltspoon recently, people who didn¡¯t know thought he was on a business trip and just came back now, with the rtionship between the two families, it was the most normal thing for Callum toe to the hospital to visit Duncan. Duncan said coldly: ¡°I don¡¯t want to see him, and now I don¡¯t want to see anyone, let him go.¡± After a moment of silence, the bodyguard said: ¡°Eldest Young Master york, and Mrs. Eldest Young Mistress are also here.¡± Duncan: ¡°I don¡¯t want to see anyone, I don¡¯t want to see them, I don¡¯t want to face their sympathetic eyes when they look at me, I don¡¯t need sympathy!¡± After the bodyguard said one more word, Duncan exploded and lost his temper again, The bodyguard growled loudly. ¡°Duncan.¡± Mr. Lewis shouted. But Mrs. Lewis hurriedly said to the bodyguard: ¡°Go out and tell Zachary and Callum that Duncan won¡¯t see any guests.¡± She followed bodyguard out of the ward. After seeing the York brothers, Mrs. Lewis burst into tears. ¡°Zachary, Callum, I don¡¯t even know what to do.¡± Mrs. Lewis wiped her tears and choked up. Serenity handed her a tissue andforted her: ¡°Auntie, Duncan will get better soon.¡± ¡°His mentality has copsed and he can¡¯t listen to anything. He always said he¡¯s disabled and struggles to sit up. He said he couldn¡¯t walk normally. He lost his self-confidence.¡± Mrs. Lewis said, tears fell down again. Duncan¡¯s mentality copsed, and Mrs. Lewis also copsed. Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Lewis took care of their son every day, without the help of maids, and did not need other sons to rece them, because they felt that they had caused the result of the youngest son. Until the youngest son recovers, Mrs. Lewis would insist on taking care of him. That way, she would feel better. The York brothers alsoforted Mrs. Lewis.N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Chapter 1698 Chapter 1698 Serenity also helped Mrs. Lewis walk to a chair not far away and sit down. ¡°Duncan doesn¡¯t want to see people, doesn¡¯tmunicate with others, so he¡¯s bored and puts himself on the edge of his horns, how can he get better?¡± Mrs. Lewis wiped her tears and apologized to the Zachary brothers: ¡°Zachary, Callum, don¡¯t me Duncan, he doesn¡¯t want to see people now, sometimes he doesn¡¯t even want to see his brothers when theye to see him, and he doesn¡¯t let them into the ward.¡± ¡°When his three sister-inws came to the ward with soup, they were not allowed in. Now, when he sees everyone, he thinks that everyone is feeling sorry for him, and he also thinks that everyone is feeling sorry for him if they say something kind to him.¡± Mrs. Lewis couldn¡¯t stop crying. Duncan had always given her the impression of being very strong. But the current copse also left Mrs. Lewis helpless. The elders of the Lewis family had all been there, but Duncan just couldn¡¯t listen to them now. He didn¡¯t even want to see his best buddies Zachary and Josh. The two send him messages and calls, but he didn¡¯t answer them. Duncanpletely locked himself in his pessimistic world. If this continued, when would he recover? After Zachary was silent, he said: ¡°Can Duncan now use a wheelchair outside, Auntie? When you have some free time, take him for a walk. He has been in the hospital bed for more than ten days, and he is bored. He¡¯ll feel better if you send him out for a walk and a break. We can¡¯t let him fall apart like this because it would ruin the rest of his life. All we need to do is help him change his mind and give him back his faith in life for him to get better.¡± Mrs. Lewis sighed, ¡°When he moves, his legs still hurt terribly. He can sit in a wheelchair, but after sitting, he feels useless again and is unable to sit in the wheelchair. He also resisted sitting in a wheelchair, saying that he would spend his whole life in a wheelchair, saying that he was disabled.¡± Zachary opened his mouth, but for a moment he didn¡¯t know how to answer. As Duncan¡¯s close buddy, Zachary had also done a lot. He spent every day sending messages and making phone calls to Duncan, trying to motivate Duncan, but like nothing, Duncan never replied to him. Did Duncan read Zachary¡¯s message, which he was unaware of? Duncan trapped himself in his pessimistic world, built an iron wall, and didn¡¯t want to see anyone other than his parents, and he couldn¡¯t listen to other people¡¯s persuasion andfort. Although it caused distress and anxiety in those who cared about him, there was nothing they could do. Mrs. Lewis cried for a long time before she stopped her tears and slowly calmed down. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Duncan continued to require Mrs. Lewis¡¯ care. No matter how ufortable Mrs. Lewis felt, she had to maintain her calmness or else her son would be effectively destroyed. ¡°Zachary, Callum, Serenity, I¡¯m really sorry, youe here every day, and you always make your trip for nothing.¡± Mrs. Lewis apologized to the three of them again. ¡°Auntie, Duncan will get over it in time, don¡¯t worry too much.¡± The York brothers were nothing but constion. Mrs. Lewis nodded. She would definitely let her son regain his confidence in life and stand up again. ¡°Zachary, the media reporters, please keep an eye on them, and don¡¯t let them write about Duncan¡¯s injury. Duncan will still use his mobile phone to check the trending news every day.¡± Thinking of this, Mrs. Lewis asked Zachary asked for help. The Lewis family members were constantly keeping an eye on current news, and as soon as they saw anything in the media about Duncan, they reacted right away. Mrs. Lewis was afraid that the Lewis family would not be able to keep an eye on her. Zachary: ¡°Auntie, I¡¯ve paid attention to it, and I won¡¯t let them make up any more random things.¡± Those media liked to involve Liberty the most. Liberty was divorced and lived with a child. This was not sensitive. What was sensitive was that her own sister was the eldest mistress of the York family. Because of this rtionship, as long as Liberty was involved, it would be very interesting. Chapter 1699 Chapter 1699 They gave the gift to the bodyguard and brought it into the ward after brieflyforting Mrs. Lewis. Prior to the others, Zachary had to leave the hospital. Mrs. Lewis escorted everyone all the way to the elevator entrance. She watched them enter the elevator before going back. Back at the door of the ward, Mrs. Lewis stood for a while before going in. Duncan was lying on the bed, staring nkly at the ceiling, wondering what he was thinking. ¡°Zachary and the others left?¡± Mr. Lewis asked softly. ¡°Duncan doesn¡¯t want to see them, they can only leave.¡± Mrs. Lewis sighed, walked to the hospital bed and sat down, looked at her son, after a while, she said softly: ¡°Duncan, everyone came to see you because they care about you. It¡¯s not sympathy, so don¡¯t go into the horns, okay?¡± Duncan closed his eyes. It was obvious that he didn¡¯t want to listen to what his mother had to say. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s heart suddenly throbbed. Duncan had been pulled back on the right track, and he no longer mored to venture into the rivers andkes. He borrowed arge sum of money from Zachary and started his own business. It was very hard at first, but he survived. More than ten years had passed before the Lewis & Co. was today. His worth had also reached tens of billions. He was a high-spirited and sessful person who walked with wind. If it wasn¡¯t for his feelings¡­he would still be the Fourth Young Master Lewis who walked like a wind. It¡¯s all her mother¡¯s fault, it¡¯s her son¡¯s car ident that caused her son to persecute and stop him from pursuing Liberty. Duncan closed his eyes because he wanted to ignore his mother and not listen to her, but unexpectedly fell asleep. Although he lied in bed every day, in fact, he suffered from insomnia and couldn¡¯t fall asleep all the time. Sometimes he closed his eyes, thought about things, and fell asleep groggyly at dawn. The car ident hit him too hard. He couldn¡¯t ept the reality that he would be crippled. ¡°Husband, look at Duncan, I¡¯ll go for a walk.¡± Mrs. Lewis got up and said. ¡°Go ahead, don¡¯t think too much, Duncan is just depressed for a short time, I believe he will cheer up.¡± Mr. Lewis knew how sad his wife was during this time. Now that Duncan was asleep, it was also good for Mrs. Lewis to go out for a walk to rx. Mrs. Lewis took a deep look at her sleeping son, then took out her bag from the drawer of the bedside table, put it on and left the ward. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. She didn¡¯t go out to rx, she went to see Liberty. When Mrs. Lewis came to Liberty, the shop was not busy. After the night shift had breakfast, few customers came in to eat. If the shop was not closed, it would be busy again at noon. Some people didn¡¯t like to eat white rice at noon, but like to eat noodles and dumplings. In the past, All You Can Eat only dealt with breakfast business, and usually started tidying up and cleaning after 10 o¡¯clock, and then closed the door for get off work. In the past, Liberty asionally kept the store open all day, working when there was work, cooking dumplings when there was no work, or simply dozing off in the store. Chapter 1700 Chapter 1700 ¡°Mrs. Lewis.¡± Seeing Mrs. Lewising in, Liberty who had just sat down quickly stood up and called Mrs. Lewis. Mrs. Lewis responded gently, and seeing that there was no business in the store, she said softly, ¡°Liberty, is it convenient for me to invite you to a nearby coffee shop for a cup of coffee?¡± Liberty smiled, ¡°It is convenient.¡± Liberty took off her apron, put it away, and said to the two shop assistants: ¡°Clean up first, I¡¯ll go out for a while, and Jim will send Sonny backter, take care of Sonny for me.¡± They had nned to go to a nearby coffee shop. The business of that coffee shop was not good, and it was losing money every month. The coffee shop owner nned to sell it. The location wasn¡¯t bad, and there ought to have been quite a few diners there, but the business wasn¡¯t great. Was this due to poor management by the owner or poor cooking by the chef? Liberty wanted to find out more clearly, and then took a look at the surrounding environment. If it was suitable, she wanted to take over the coffee shop. The vegetable farm invested by her sister had a stable business, and a vegetablepany had also been established. It cooperated with many big hotels, schools, and factories, and supplies a lot of vegetables every day. Apart from taking care of the business she invested in, Serenity also had to learn to manage the internal affairs of her inw¡¯s family, so she was very busy. Liberty didn¡¯t expect to catch up with her sister, she just wanted to make a bloody breakthrough in the catering industry. ¡°Okay.¡± After arranging things in the store, Liberty followed Mrs. Lewis out. Liberty didn¡¯t take Mrs. Lewis¡¯s car, she drove her own car and followed Mrs. Lewis to the nearby coffee shop. The business of the coffee shop was so-so, so it seemed very quiet. Both ordered a cup of coffee. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, you need to rest more and take care of her health.¡± Liberty said with concern. Compared with before, Mrs. Lewis looked old and haggard, she didn¡¯t even put on makeup, and she didn¡¯t have the grace and luxury of a nobledy like before. Mrs. Lewis said with a wry smile: ¡°I also want to take care of my health, but seeing Duncan like that, I can¡¯t eat or sleep, and I feel very ufortable.¡± After a moment of silence, Liberty said: ¡°Mr. Lewis will get better.¡± N?velDrama.Org content rights. Mrs. Lewis picked up her cup of coffee and took a sip. She couldn¡¯t sleep well and was in low spirits. She would ask someone to deliver coffee to the hospital twice a day, and she just relied on drinking coffee to survive. Putting down the cup, Mrs. Lewis med herself: ¡°Liberty, I regret it, I regret it so much that my g-u-ts turn green. Duncan likes you, why should I stop him? He is almost 40 years old, and it is rare for him to like you, I should be happy, but I¡­If I can have Tania¡¯s mentality, Duncan won¡¯t be lying in bed today.¡± Tania was the head of the York family, her status couldn¡¯t be said to be invaluable, besides, Tania was born and grew up in a wealthy family, and his vision had always been very high. When Zachary¡¯s Grandma forced Zachary to marry Serenity, Tania was displeased, but she didn¡¯t stop his son, and let him make his own decision. At first, Tania didn¡¯t like and couldn¡¯t ept Serenity as her daughter-inw. But no matter how disliked Serenity was, Tania never did anything to hurt Serenity, nor did she do anything extreme to break up the young couple. When someone called Tania to sue Serenity and speak ill of Serenity, Tania ignored her status and image, scolded the other party bloody, and wanted to protect her daughter-inw. Mrs. Lewis thought that if she had Tania¡¯s mentality and structure, what happened today would not have happened. ¡°Duncan has been trying to convince me. I refused to let go. I didn¡¯t agree with you two being together. I told him that if I want to agree with you, he should sever the mother-child rtionship with me. Liberty, if time can turn back, I will definitely help you and Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis couldn¡¯t help holding Liberty¡¯s hand, and continued: ¡°Liberty, now, I want to leave, and I don¡¯t want to care about it. Now, as long as Duncan is healthy, he can like whoever he likes, he really likes you, what he said to you in the hospital are not his true words.¡± Chapter 1701 Chapter 1701 Mrs. Lewis continued: ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t listen to Duncan¡¯s hurtful words; he is now¡­ He doesn¡¯t want to see anyone whoes to see him because he is like a hedgehog covered in thorns, and they all im that otherse to see him out of sympathy.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I won¡¯t me Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty gently withdrew her hand. She¡¯s not used to being held hands so intimately by Mrs. Lewis. ¡°Liberty, I came to you today to ask for something.¡± Mrs. Lewis got to the point, she looked at Liberty with pleading eyes, and said, ¡°Liberty, we are all very sad for Duncan now but we can¡¯t persuade him. He likes you very much, and he doesn¡¯t want to see you recently. He has low self-esteem, thinks he is disabled, and doesn¡¯t want to drag you down, so he refuses to see you.¡± Liberty listened to Mrs. Lewis silently but said nothing. Mrs. Lewis was also silent for a while, and then said: ¡°Liberty, I want you to take care of Duncan, help him regain his confidence, and continue to do rehabilitation after he is discharged from the hospital.¡± She felt that the only way was to ask Liberty to take care of Duncan that he can regain confidence and have a chance to recover. Otherwise, if he continued to be depressed like this, it was really possible that he would be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life. Mrs. Lewis: ¡°I know you are also very busy, your business is good, and you can make a lot of money a day. Don¡¯t worry, I will never let you suffer. I will give you a sry of $10,000 a day. You only need to go to work during the day, and you don¡¯t need to guard him at night. What do you think?¡± This was a very high sry and Liberty¡¯s all-you-can-eat business was very good, but it hadn¡¯t reached the point of earning $10,000 a day. Mrs. Lewis thought that she paid $10,000 a day to ask Liberty to take care of her son and encouraged him to regain his confidence. ¡°Whether you have any thoughts about Duncan, we will not interfere with you. That is between you and Duncan. What I just said is the truth. As long as my child lives happily, it doesn¡¯t matter who he likes. Whoever he wants to marry, I only want my child to live happily. Liberty, I know that such a request of mine is difficult for you, but I really have no choice but toe to disturb you.¡± Mrs. Lewis grabbed Liberty¡¯s hand again, and begged: ¡°Liberty, please, help us, only you can take care of Duncan, so that Duncan can stand up again. Please Now, if you think the sry I give is too little, you can tell me the amount, no matter how much you want, I will satisfy you.¡± Liberty waited for Mrs. Lewis to finish speaking, and she said: ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t help you. Mr. Lewis has helped me a lot. I feel sorry for him as he is now, and I hope he recovers soon. If I can help him, I¡¯m very happy. I am willing to help him, but it has nothing to do with feelings, and Mrs. Lewis, you don¡¯t have to give me such a high sry.¡± Mrs. Lewis said: ¡°Duncan is hard-spoken and soft-hearted, especially for you, as long as you are willing to go to the hospital to take care of him, no matter how hard he will soften, this is not a problem. I sacrificed so much time to take care of Duncan, Now, I will definitelypensate you, I am very clear about your behavior, just treat it as if you are working and do things with money.¡± When taking care of Duncan, if Liberty developed feelings for him, Mrs. Lewis would not care about it; if there was still no love between them, Mrs. Lewis would Respect Liberty¡¯s decision. Mrs. Lewis could only sigh that the two are destined for each other. If Duncan didn¡¯t want to marry because of this, she would admit it too. It was the son who lived, and he could live whatever he wanted. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Mrs. Lewis had to say that Duncan had a car ident this time, she really looked away. It¡¯s just that the price she needed to pay is a bit high. Chapter 1702 Chapter 1702 My son has lost his temper, throwing things. we are his biological parents, and I caused his car ident, so we can bear him. Who else would be angry with him? I think we spend a lot of money to hire nurses to take care of him. No one wants to make that kind of money, he is really hard to take care of right now.¡± Mrs. Lewis said. Mrs. Lewis felt that spending $300,000 a month to hire Liberty to take care of Duncan was not expensive at all, as long as her son recovered, no matter how much money was spent, she was willing. $300,000, that was, the money for one bag of hers, and she had more than $300,000 in bags. Mrs. Lewis felt that paying $10,000 a day was not much, but Liberty thought it was too much. Her all-you-can-eat business was booming, and the daily running water cost only a few thousand dors, which was far from ten thousand dors. ¡°You want to live and raise Sonny. Sonny is in Wiltspoon Central Kindergarten. The tuition of this kindergarten is very expensive. Even if you are willing to help us take care of Duncan unconditionally, we can¡¯t let you do that and we¡¯ll feel uneasy. Liberty, I¡¯ll give you $300,000 a month, it¡¯s really not much, you don¡¯t have to think about it, and don¡¯t bargain with me anymore, if you bargain with me again, I¡¯ll give you $50,000.¡± Liberty: ¡°¡­ Mrs. Lewis, can you let me think again?¡± ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. She wanted to talk to Serenity about this matter. Liberty: ¡°I¡¯ll answer you tomorrow.¡± Mrs. Lewis nodded, ¡°It¡¯s ok, Liberty, think about it carefully, I won¡¯t rush you, Duncan will have to stay in the hospital for a while before he can be discharged. His father and I can still survive with his current state. It will be troublesome to do rehabilitation in the future.¡± Liberty looked at Mrs. Lewis¡¯s white hair, thisdy, at this moment, was no longer superior, she was only worried about her son, and only wanted to make him get better. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I will reply you when I think about it. Don¡¯t worry too much. Mr. Lewis is just in a low mood for a while. He is not easy to be defeated. He will definitely recover.¡± Mrs. Lewis sighed and said: ¡°You want tofort me like this, and I alsofort myself like this, but seeing Duncan like that, how can I not be worried? It¡¯s because of me, a mother, that he will be like this, and I me myself a lot.¡± Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes were red again. It had only been more than ten days since the incident happened, and she seemed to be ten years older. Heartache, self-me, and remorse tortured her every day and every moment. Every time Duncan lost his temper, yelled at her, or knocked things over. Mrs. Lewis had to take care of him despite how difficult it was for her to be his mother. Duncan was going through a difficult time. After cleaning up the mess, Mrs. Lewis would hide in the bathroom, cover her mouth and cry. ¡°Liberty, I¡¯m sorry for you too, I¡¯m really sorry, don¡¯t take what I told you in the past, don¡¯t take it to heart, actually I don¡¯t hate you as a person, it¡¯s just the family concept that prevents Duncan from pursuing you. Now, I feel that as long as my child is doing well, everything else is unimportant and can be solved. You are also a self-motivated person, and there is a big gap between you and Duncan now, but I believe that in your hard work, the distance between you and Duncan will be smaller.¡± Mrs. Lewis really didn¡¯t hate Liberty, she just had her own opinion and felt that Liberty was not good enough for her youngest son, that¡¯s why she kept preventing the two of them from being together. Also Liberty had not fallen in love with Duncan until now. Chapter 1703 Chapter 1703 It was useless to find Liberty. Mrs. Lewis also did a series of extreme things against her son. And then¡­ now there was only regret. Liberty said generously: ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I don¡¯t remember what you said to me before, and I can understand you. If I like a girl who is very different from him, it may be difficult for me to ept.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Before, Mrs. Lewis would think that she was a very enlightened mother. After really experiencing it, might be not many people could really be enlightened and let their children marry whoever they want. Just because few people could do it, it seemed that the elders of the York family were rare. Liberty frequently advised Serenity to treasure the things she had at the time, not to mention Zachary, but how many people could handle York¡¯s elders¡¯ wisdom? Therefore, Mrs. Lewis would stop Duncan from pursuing Liberty, but Liberty was not angry at all, she could understand Mrs. Lewis. ¡°Liberty, thank you, thank you for not ming me.¡± Mrs. Lewis thanked gratefully, Liberty¡¯s character, she thought it¡¯s pretty well. Although Liberty¡¯s background was not as good as that of the Lewis family, she also worked hard to make herself stronger. As long as people were self-motivated and willing to work hard, Liberty was actually pretty good. She had always known that Liberty was a good person, but she couldn¡¯t get over the hurdle of being well-matched at the beginning. From now on, she would no longer care about her children¡¯s feelings. Children and grandchildren had their own blessings, so let them go. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I haven¡¯t done anything worthy of your gratitude, so please stop thanking me.¡± Liberty said shyly. Sheforted Mrs. Lewis again: ¡°Mrs. Lewis, trust Mr. Lewis, he will not be defeated easily.¡± Mrs. Lewis nodded silently. After staying in the coffee shop for a while, Mrs. Lewis was thinking about her son in the hospital, so she hurried away and rushed back to the hospital to continue taking care of her son who was getting more and more irritable every day. After Mrs. Lewis left, Liberty sat for a while before leaving. When she returned to All You Can Eat, Sonny had already dismissed get out of ss, and Jim saw that Liberty was not in the store, even though there were two shop assistants, he did not leave, and stayed in the store to y with Sonny. Seeing Libertying back, Jim straightened up and greeted with a smile: ¡°Sister Liberty.¡± Jim helped Liberty pick up and drop off Sonny every day, but Liberty wouldn¡¯t let him call her Ms. Hunt, but asked him to call her Sister. Jim was not impolite, he needed less time with the young master now, but taking good care of Sonny and gaining the trust of Sister Liberty, the future was still boundless. Liberty smiled and nodded. Sonny trotted over and threw himself into Liberty¡¯s arms. ¡°Mom, I¡¯ve been praised today.¡± Sonny happily shared the joy of being praised with his mother. After Liberty asked him why he was praised, she also praised him. Sonny was very snarky. ¡°Mom, I¡¯m going to my aunt¡¯s ce.¡± Sonny would show off after being praised, and wanted to be praised by more people. Liberty stood up and said with a smile, ¡°Okay, mom will take you to your aunt now.¡± She took out her mobile phone and sent a message asking where Serenity was. Serenity quickly replied to her sister, she replied with a voice message: ¡°Sister, I just returned to the bookstore.¡± ¡°Mom, I want to talk to my aunt.¡± Sonny made a request. Chapter 1704 Chapter 1704 Liberty then handed the phone to Sonny. Let the two shop assistants get off work first, and then thank Jim: ¡°Jim, thank you for helping me pick up Sonny again.¡± ¡°The task is what I should do.¡± Jim smiled foolishly, ¡°I¡¯m very happy to be able to help you. Sonny is so cute, and now I can¡¯t see Sonny for a day, and I miss him all the time.¡± Sonny lifted his chin when he heard Jim¡¯s words, and said confidently: ¡°Uncle, am I loved by everyone and bloomed by flowers?¡± Jim smiled and said, ¡°Yes, yes, Sonny is loved by everyone and bloomed by flowers. He is the cutest child Uncle has ever seen.¡± Liberty led the child out, and said with a smile: ¡°Jim, stop praising him. If you praise him again, his tail will go up to the sky.¡± ¡°I¡¯m telling the truth, Sonny is indeed I¡¯ve seen the cutest child.¡± Jim felt that what he was telling was telling the truth. Of course, a few yearster, he would say this to another child. Liberty was going to Wiltspoon Middle School, so Jim didn¡¯t need to follow her, Jim automatically and consciously went back to the young master¡¯s side. Half an hourter. ¡°Auntie, Auntie Jasmine.¡± After getting out of the car, Sonny yelled at Serenity and Jasmine before entering the store. Jasmine was sitting at the cash register reading books, bored, reading books to pass the time. Serenity was arranging those books in front of the bookshelf. Hearing Sonny¡¯s shout, Serenity walked out of the store, and Sonny ran over. She smiled and picked up her nephew, ¡°Sonny is very happy today, if there is something happy, tell me so that your aunt will also be happy.¡± She just didn¡¯t say why he was happy. Sonny wanted to talk to his aunt face to face. Hearing her praise face to face was different from listening to it in the voice message. Jasmine also came out. ¡°Auntie Jasmine.¡± Sonny politely called Jasmine again. Jasmine smiled and pinched his face lightly, ¡°Auntie Jasmine hasn¡¯t seen Sonny for a while, it¡¯s strange to think of Sonny.¡± She had heard that because she frequently gazed at pictures of adorable babies while she was pregnant, the child she gave birth to would be equally adorable, but she wasn¡¯t sure if this was true. Jasmine looked at the adorable Sonny. She often saw Sonny, and her baby would be very beautiful in the future. She had discussed this topic with Serenity, and Serenity reassured her that with her and Josh¡¯s excellent genes, the crystallization of their love would not be ugly. N?velDrama.Org content rights. ¡°Sister.¡± ¡°Sister Liberty.¡± Liberty was carrying a few bags of vegetables in her hand. When she passed by the supermarket, she went in to buy them and nned to cook for Serenity. ¡°I bought a few dishes, and we will eat at your store at noon.¡± Liberty said while carrying the bag into the kitchen. Serenity put down her nephew, and followed into the kitchen, ¡°Zachary and Josh had arranged for someone to bring the food as long as Jasmine and I ate inside the store. It has been a while since Jasmine and I went grocery shopping and cooked for ourselves.¡± After Liberty put down the bag, she began to wash the pot and prepare to cook the rice, ¡°Then you tell the two of them that there is no need to deliver it at noon today, and I will make it for you two.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity immediately sent a message to her man, and then asked Liberty: ¡°Sister, are you okay?¡± Turning to look at her sister, Liberty smiled and said: ¡°It¡¯s okay, can¡¯t your sistere over?¡± Serenity: ¡°No, but I intuitively feel that you¡¯er here for business.¡± Liberty washed the rice cooker, put the rice in, and said while washing the rice: ¡°We sisters really can¡¯t hide anything from each other.¡± Chapter 1705 Chapter 1705 Serenity asked with concern: ¡°Sister, what¡¯s the matter? Liberty: ¡°A high-paying job.¡± After washing the rice, Liberty put in the water again, then pressed the switch of the plug, and then pressed the rice cooker on the rice cooker, and then turned to face her sister. Serenity: ¡°Sister, your breakfast shop is running well, why do you still have to look for a job? Do you think Sonny is going to kindergarten, and you feel too much pressure? It¡¯s okay, I can help Sonny pay the tuition. I can¡¯t spend all the pocket money that was given to me every month, and everyone in their family can also receive a certain amount of pocket money every month, and the most important thing I need now is money.¡± Serenity thought that her sister, Liberty was under a lot of pressure in life, Still looking for a job. ¡°No, Sonny¡¯s tuition is not a problem. The money that Hank gave me back then is enough for Sonny to go to school. I still have ie every day, so it¡¯s not a matter ofck of money.¡± Liberty looked outside, Seeing Jasmine teasing Sonny, she went on to say: ¡°Mrs. Lewis came to see me just now.¡± Hearing this, Serenity frowned, ¡°What is she looking for you for? She told you to take Sonny and leave Wiltspoon again, Right?¡± Duncan didn¡¯t want to see Liberty now, since Mrs. Lewis had a criminal record, Serenity¡¯s first thought was that Mrs. Lewis wanted Liberty to leave Wiltspoon with her son because Duncan didn¡¯t want to see Liberty. ¡°She asked me to go to the hospital to take care of Mr. Lewis. After Mr. Lewis was discharged from the hospital and he could do rehabilitation, she also asked me to apany Mr. Lewis to do his rehabilitation. She gave me $300,000 a month. I said she gave too much money. Mr. Lewis has helped me so much, I regard him as a friend, and I also hope that he can recover. Mrs. Lewis insisted on giving me the money, and said that if I disagreed with $300,000 a month, she would add more. I don¡¯t care if the money is not. I want to ask for your opinion. Serenity, do you think I should pay more? Don¡¯t you want to take care of Mr. Lewis? I also told Mrs. Lewis that even if I agreed to her, it has nothing to do with feelings. I never thought about marrying Mr. Lewis, but simply hoped that he would get better. But if I really¡­Will taking care of him make him sink deeper and deeper? He doesn¡¯t want to see me now, so I¡¯m going, will he ept it?¡± Serenity didn¡¯t know how to answer the question for a while. After thinking about it, she said to Liberty: ¡°Mrs. Lewis wille to find you to take care of Mr. Lewis. I have already guessed that Mr. Lewis likes you so much. Mrs. Lewis feels distressed and anxious about his current state. Now you¡¯ve to go and motivate Mr. Lewis.¡± Liberty: ¡°Sister, I¡¯ll go if you want, and if you refuse, I don¡¯t want to go. If I go, I can¡¯t say that Mr. Lewis will get deeper and deeper. Sister, can you keep your heart? I feel that my conscience is uneasy.¡± Being together day and night was the easiest way to express feelings. Liberty was silent. After a long while, Liberty said: ¡°After I finish my business in the store every day, I will go to the hospital to take care of Mr. Lewis. I won¡¯t stay in the hospital all day. I don¡¯t want thepensation that Mrs. Lewis gave me. In my words, I don¡¯t want money. If I go, I always feel that my conscience is not at ease.¡± When she had an ident, Duncan stayed up all night, guarding outside her ward, waiting for her to wake up. Every day Duncan had time to visit her in the hospital. Let¡¯s not talk about these, just say that Duncan also helped her a lot in the past. She took care of Duncan for free, and it was considered as a favor owed to him. As for the emotional matter, if she didn¡¯t talk about it, Duncan won¡¯t talk about it now. Before it arrived, who knew how it would develop? N?velDrama.Org content rights. ¡°In that case, sister, you will be very tired.¡± Serenity felt sorry for her sister. ¡°I¡¯ll go home and rest in the afternoon.¡± Liberty reassured Serenity, ¡°I won¡¯t let myself copse from exhaustion. What you say, how you think, I don¡¯t need to care about it, as long as I have a clear conscience.¡± When Liberty said it, Serenity knew that Liberty had made a decision. No matter what decision Liberty made, Serenity would support Liberty. With the support of Serenity, Liberty no longer struggled, and decided to go to the hospital to take care of Duncan when she was free, encourage Duncan, and not ask Mrs. Lewis to pay for it. Chapter 1706 Chapter 1706 Turning around, Liberty found a bag of pig bones she bought from several bags, and was going to wash them and use them to make bone soup. ¡°I¡¯ll reply to Mrs. Lewis first.¡± Liberty remembered that she wanted to reply to Mrs. Lewis, stopped what she was doing, took out her mobile phone and called Mrs. Lewis, and told Mrs. Lewis her decision. Mrs. Lewis thanked her a lot and insisted on paying her. Liberty thought that if she would not ept Mrs. Lewis¡¯s money then, Mrs. Lewis would have nothing to do with her. After making a decision, Liberty was busy preparing lunch. When it was time to get off work at noon, Liberty had already prepared lunch. ¡°Serenity, Mrs. Lewis will receive soup first, and Sonny will stay with you.¡± Liberty came out of the kitchen carrying the insted lunch box, ¡°The food is ready, put it in the pot, and you and Jasmine will have dinner after you finish your work.¡± ¡°Sister, have you eaten yet?¡± Serenity asked with concern. The bookstore had not been busy recently. Summer vacation wasing soon. A few days before the summer vacation, students needed to buy summer homework. There were many people, so it would be busy. ¡°I ate some.¡± Liberty replied as she walked out. ¡°Mom, I¡¯m going too.¡± Seeing that his mother was leaving, Sonny yelled, and he followed her. ¡°Sonny, you haven¡¯t eaten yet, don¡¯t go, after eating, your aunt will take you there.¡± Liberty said. Serenity came out, hugged Sonny, and prevented Sonny from following. Sonny was a little wronged, but he was coaxed by his aunt. ¡­. In the hospital, Duncan still didn¡¯t want to eat. He knocked all the lunch delivered by Mrs. Lewis herself on the ground. Elder Young Mistress Lewis was startled by her brother-inw¡¯s rough action and took a few steps back so that her clothes would not be stained by the overturned food. ¡°Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis shouted, ¡°Why overthrow them all if you do not wish to eat? Your parents have not yet eaten up food.¡± Duncan¡¯s temper had recently been getting progressively worse. Although her brother-inw, Duncan didn¡¯t eat by himself and even knocked over the food, Elder Young Mistress Lewis understood and felt bad for Duncan. As a result, neither she nor her inws had to eat. ¡°Since your ident, look at what your parents have be. Your parents have stayed up day and night to take care of you personally. You have suffered from severe dark circles, your hair is all white, and you are emaciated. You only care about yourself. Why don¡¯t you see everyone worrying about you?¡± ¡°If you look like this, not only will you not be able to recover, but it will also make everyone who cares about you sad.¡± Duncan had just started junior high school when Elder Young Mistress Lewis married into the Lewis family; as a result, she loved and cared for Duncan a lot, and Duncan always respected his elder sister-Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. inw. Considering Duncan¡¯s mood, others were reluctant to scold her, so the Elder young mistress Lewis couldn¡¯t help but scold Mrs. Lewis. Chapter 1707 Chapter 1707 Don¡¯t scold Duncan, Duncan is already suffering enough.¡± Elder Young Mistress Lewis said, ¡°Mom, I know Duncan is suffering, don¡¯t we? We also care about him and his health, and Doctor didn¡¯t even sentence him to death, but he sentenced himself to death first. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Mom, don¡¯t just go after him blindly, but let him get back on his feet.¡± Elder Young Mistress Lewis could fully understand how her mother-inw took care of her brother-in- law every step of the way after the ident for which she took full responsibility. They could onlye to visit every day and bring food. Sometimes, when they came, her brother-inw didn¡¯t even want to see them. Elder Young Mistress Lewis¡¯s husband was the head of the family who had taken over the business of the Lewis family. He was busy with work every day and was also worried about her brother-inw¡¯s injury. However, her brother-inw was only immersed in pessimism and didn¡¯t care about his family¡¯s feelings at all. Mrs. Lewis¡¯s eyes turned red all of a sudden. She choked up and said: ¡°I also want to cheer him up, but he can¡¯t listen to what we say. He lies on the bed every day, and his legs hurt sharply when he moves. It¡¯s normal for him to be irritable. Don¡¯t me him. Don¡¯t me him¡­¡± ¡°Mom.¡± Elder Young Mistress Lewis brought a tissue to her mother-inw, sighed, ¡°I didn¡¯t me him, I just wanted to wake him up.¡± Mrs. Lewis said after wiping away her tears: ¡°In order to cheer Duncan up, I went to Liberty and asked Liberty to take care of Duncan. Duncan likes her so much, so she came to take care of Duncan. I think Duncan will cheer up for her.¡± Elder Young Mistress Lewis: ¡°Didn¡¯t Duncan even want to see Liberty?¡± After Duncan¡¯s ident, Liberty woulde to the hospital every day, but she was turned away every day. In order to stop Liberty, she even used her seldom-knowledge. All the bodyguards were transferred to the hospital, working in three shifts 24 hours a day, guarding the door of the ward, just to keep Liberty out. Others were turned away incidentally. ¡°I have to try again.¡± Mrs. Lewis wiped away her tears again, ¡°I pin all my hopes on Liberty.¡± Elder Young Mistress Lewis: ¡°Mom, Duncan doesn¡¯t want to see Liberty because he doesn¡¯t want to drag Liberty down. Let Liberty take care of him, and his feelings for Liberty will be deeper and deeper, and Liberty doesn¡¯t want to marry again¡­the two of them will keep cutting each other, and the reasoning will still be messed up.¡± Mrs. Lewis choked up: ¡°I don¡¯t care. I just want Duncan to get better. He has helped Liberty so much. If I ask Liberty, she will definitely agree. I know she is a good person. She just replied to my message, shees here now. Even if we don¡¯t invite Liberty to take care of Duncan, do you think Duncan can really let Liberty go? He can¡¯t let go, since we can¡¯t let go, we will help him.¡± Mrs. Lewis lowered her voice, afraid of being heard by Duncan. ¡°If the two of them get along day and night, maybe Liberty will fall in love with Duncan. When Duncan recovers, the two of them will be able to hold a wedding. Now, I don¡¯t want to stop it anymore. Children and grandchildren have their own blessings, let them do it Whether they are happy or not is their own choice.¡± Although Liberty was divorced, she was five years younger than Duncan, and Duncan also liked Sonny very much. If they form a family of three, they would surely be happy. Of course, if the two of them became a couple, Mrs. Lewis still hoped that Liberty would give birth to a child for Sonny. Before even writing the horoscope, Mrs. Lewis thought about having a baby. Elder Young Mistress Lewis: ¡°¡­¡± The mother-inw was convinced that Liberty owed too much favor to her Brother-inw. When Liberty had an ident, the brother-inw stayed with Liberty overnight. It was very difficult for Liberty to refuse her mother-inw¡¯s request. On the emotional scale, Elder Young Mistress Lewis was also on her mother-inw¡¯s side. As long as it could make her brother-inw better. Brother-inw was good, if he married Liberty, Liberty would not feel wronged. When the mother-inw and daughter-inwmunicated, Mr. Lewis silently cleaned up the mess. Duncan, who overturned all the meals,y on the bed indifferently, staring at the ceiling without speaking. Seeing his son¡¯s indifference andck of guilt, Mr. Lewis wanted to criticize his son, but finally swallowed the words. ¡°knock knock.¡± There was a knock on the door. Chapter 1708 Chapter 1708 Mrs. Lewis in the small living room outside the ward responded to the knock on the door. The door was pushed open, but there were bodyguards. ¡°Ma¡¯am, Miss Liberty is here again.¡± The bodyguard told Mrs. Lewis. Before Mrs. Lewis answered, Duncan in the ward had very sharp ears. He was indifferent just now, but immediately reacted: ¡°Tell her to go, I don¡¯t want to see her, tell her not toe here again.¡± The bodyguard sighed inwardly when he heard Duncan¡¯s roar. Every time Liberty came, Duncan always reacted like this. Only when Liberty came, Duncan would have such a big reaction. Any one knew that Duncan¡¯s emotions were being held back by Liberty. ¡°Let Liberty in.¡± Mrs. Lewis said against Duncan. The bodyguard was in a dilemma for a while. When Duncan inside heard his mother¡¯s words, he turned over anxiously and wanted to get off the ground. But the injuries to his legs hadn¡¯t healed yet, and he couldn¡¯t walk at all. When he turned over and fell to the ground like this, he fell off the bed and fell to the ground with a bang. Mr. Lewis, who was about to drink water, immediately threw away the water ss, and hurried forward to help his son up. Mrs. Lewis and Elder Young Mistress Lewis also came in quickly. Seeing Duncan fall to the ground, the two of them hurried forward, together with Mr. Lewis, they helped and lifted Duncan back to the bed. ¡°Tell Liberty to go, tell her to go, I don¡¯t want to see her!¡± Duncan fell, the severe pain in his leg made his face pale as paper, and the cold sweat broke out, he was still screaming, calling for Liberty leave. He didn¡¯t want Liberty to see him in such a mess and useless state. He even didn¡¯t want to see her sympathy in Liberty¡¯s eyes. He didn¡¯t need anyone¡¯s sympathy. If he¡¯s disabled, he¡¯ll be disabled. He spent the rest of his life in a wheelchair. ¡°Okay, don¡¯t let her in. Tell her to go back.¡± Mrs. Lewis said quickly, to calm her son¡¯s emotions. Turning around, Mrs. Lewis burst into tears. The bodyguards did not let Liberty in, and there was amotion in the ward, which could be heard by Liberty who was blocked at the door of the ward. ¡°Miss Liberty, our Fourth Young Master Lewis doesn¡¯t want to see you, so please go back.¡± The bodyguard said to Liberty. Liberty was not like usual. Duncan didn¡¯t see her, she left quickly, this time, she stood at the door, and said to the bodyguard: ¡°I won¡¯t see your fourth young master today, I will just stand here and not leave.¡± Bodyguard: ¡°¡­¡± Everyone exchanged nces. One of the bodyguards entered the ward. He ryed Liberty¡¯s words to Duncan. ? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org. Duncan endured the pain, and said indifferently: ¡°How long she has to stand is her business.¡± Chapter 1709 Chapter 1709 Chapter 1709 ¡°Duncan.¡± Mrs. Lewis called out. She was the one who asked Liberty to take care of her son, but she always let Liberty stand outside, she felt sorry for Liberty. Duncan closed his eyes, as if he didn¡¯t want to talk. Mrs. Lewis was helpless. Seeing the cold sweat on her son¡¯s forehead, she felt distressed again, and took a tissue to gently wipe the cold sweat off her son. Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Duncan, Mom knows you still like Liberty very much, why are you bothering?¡± Duncan still closed his eyes and did not speak. Treating Liberty like this made him feel sadder than anyone else, the pain was like someone had cut his heart with a knife. But, now that he was like this, he didn¡¯t want Liberty to see him. When his limbs were healthy, Liberty didn¡¯t even fall in love with him. Now that he had lost his legs, Liberty would not fall in love with him, but would sympathize with him. Seeing that her son didn¡¯t want to talk, Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯t say anything and stopped talking. After a moment of silence, Mrs. Lewis got up and walked out. She gently opened the door of the ward, and saw Liberty standing at the door. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, is Mr. Lewis okay?¡± Liberty could hear the movement in the ward standing at the door. Mrs. Lewis closed the door of the ward again. She pulled Liberty to a chair and sat down. She sighed and said, ¡°Liberty, don¡¯t argue with him. He is now¡­he¡¯s fine. We carried him back to the bed after he fell off the bed and out of it.¡± Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. s! Duncan¡¯s legs were seriously injured, and if he fell off the bed, his legs would hurt even more. When Liberty thought of that scene, her heart ached a little. Liberty: ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯ll go in and have a look at him.¡± Mrs. Lewis pulled Liberty back, ¡°He doesn¡¯t want to see you. If you go in, he will fall off the bed again when he gets agitated.¡± Liberty said firmly, ¡°If he fell off the bed, and I cushioned him.¡± Mrs. Lewis let go of her hand. Liberty carried the insted lunch box and walked back to the door of the ward. Two bodyguards immediately blocked her with their hands. One of the bodyguards said embarrassingly: ¡°Ms. Liberty, our Fourth Young Master doesn¡¯t want to see you, pleasee back.¡± ¡°Get out of the way, both of you.¡± Mrs. Lewis came over, and stretched out her hand to push the two bodyguards. The bodyguards didn¡¯t dare to fight Mrs. Lewis, so they probably wanted to let the water go. In short, Liberty went in. When Mr. Lewis saw Libertying in, he opened his mouth, but in the end he didn¡¯t speak, and walked out of the ward silently. Duncan on the bed still had his eyes closed tightly. In fact, he was not asleep. He just pretended to be asleep to avoid his parents, and he didn¡¯t want to see them feel distressed. Liberty saw Duncan on the day when the incident happened, and after Duncan knew about her injury, he refused to see her. She hadn¡¯t seen him for ten days. Duncan was currently lying on the bed; his face was pale, a cold sweat was still forming on his forehead, he had significantly lost weight, his beard was untrimmed, and his mouth was covered in stubble. Liberty walked over gently and put the insted lunch box on the bedside counter. She sat down on the edge of the bed and pulled out a tissue, just to wipe the sweat off Duncan¡¯s forehead. Duncan suddenly opened his eyes. He felt a different breath. Seeing Liberty sitting by the bed, she was holding a tissue in her hand, as if she wanted to wipe his sweat off, but when he opened his eyes, her movements froze. Chapter 1710 Chapter 1710 Chapter 1710 Duncan was extremely indifferent on the surface, lost his temper, and didn¡¯t want to see Liberty, but when he really saw her, his eyes He became greedy, locked Liberty¡¯s facial features tightly, and wanted to imprint her image deep in his heart. Opening his mouth, he wanted to say something, but found that his throat was a little blocked, and he couldn¡¯t say a word. He was dreaming. He said he couldn¡¯t see Liberty, and his parents wouldn¡¯t let Liberty in. He must be dreaming. Duncan closed his eyes again. When the soft tissue touched his skin, Duncan opened his eyes again. He was not dreaming. It¡¯s really Liberty! She actually came in! Who let her in? N?velDrama.Org content. Duncan¡¯s eyes were cold, his expression was indifferent, and he raised his hand suddenly, pped Liberty¡¯s hand away roughly, and asked coldly: ¡°Who let you in? I don¡¯t want to see you, you get out! Are you still not satisfied that I have been hurt like this? Go, go, go, I don¡¯t want to see you!¡± Liberty calmly withdrew his hand to wipe his sweat, and said calmly: ¡°Your mom came back to me and offered a job of $10,000 per day, which is a lot of money, to take care of you for a month. Since I have received the money, I will take care of you. Even if you don¡¯t want to see me, there is nothing you can do. Close your eyes, if you close your eyes, you won¡¯t be able to see me.¡± Liberty threw away the tissue and said, ¡°You haven¡¯t even eaten lunch, are you hungry? I boiled some bone soup for you, and it¡¯s still warm. Do you drink it yourself, or should I feed you?¡± Duncan stared at her. ¡°Also, Mr. Lewis, it¡¯s not me who caused you, but you who was driving too fast. You have to bear the consequences for your own mistakes. Sonny knows this. From now on, drive as you please. Don¡¯t think you¡¯re flying a ne.¡± When Liberty was talking, she got up and searched in the drawer of the bedside table, looking for a bowl for Duncan to drink. Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± ¡°What are you looking for? Do you want to steal something?¡± Duncan asked with a ck face. ¡°I want to steal a bowl for you to drink soup. Can I steal a bowl?¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± He had broken the bowl. Liberty didn¡¯t find a bowl, so she said, ¡°Then I can only let you drink soup from the insted lunch box.¡± ¡°I won¡¯t drink, and I¡¯m not hungry, so get out! Get out!¡± Duncan roared. He still wanted to sit up, but he pulled his legs and the pain made him give up. Seeing that Liberty was unmoved, he pulled his own pillow, and then threw it at Liberty. Liberty easily caught the pillow he threw at her, put it on the bed of a family member beside him, and said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, I told you just now that Mrs. Lewis spent a lot of money to hire me to take care of you, Mrs. Lewis has already paid a high sry to me, and the money is in my pocket, and I am reluctant to spit it out. I can only continue to take care of you.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­I will give you $600,000, and you go out and I don¡¯t need you to take care of me!¡± Duncan had already guessed that his mother would look for Liberty, so he kept acting like he med Liberty, but who knew that his mother still went to find Liberty. His mother also spent a lot of money to ask Liberty to take care of him. ¡°Is this the heaven¡¯s pie? Is there such a good thing? But I have always been downto-earth and don¡¯t believe in the sky¡¯s pie. I¡¯d better take care of Mr. Lewis honestly with the $10,000 sry per dar that Mrs. Lewis gave me.¡± Duncan patted the bed, ¡°Liberty, get out, get out! I don¡¯t want to see you! Dad, Mom, come in and drag her out!¡± Chapter 1711 Chapter 1711 Chapter 1711 Mrs. Lewis wanted toe in but Mr. Lewis held her back and said, ¡°Since Liberty is allowed in, let her deal with it.¡± The two bodyguards said with a bitter face, ¡°Sir, if we don¡¯t go in for a while, Fourth Young Master will settle the scoreter. ¡° Mr. Lewis and Mrs. Lewis were the parents of the fourth young master. The fourth young master couldn¡¯t do anything to his own parents, but The two bodyguards were just bodyguards. ¡°You two go in and deal with it.¡± Mr. Lewis thought about the two bodyguards going in, and he didn¡¯t dare to touch Liberty. He didn¡¯t look at Duncan¡¯s eagerness to throw Liberty out, he was more anxious than anyone else if someone really tries to do something to Liberty. All felt bad. Two bodyguards went in. Liberty sat in front of the bed, and pretended she couldn¡¯t help it while she quietly observed the fourth young master patting the bed. ¡°Get her out of here, and don¡¯t let her in in the future!¡± Duncan saw two bodyguardsing in, stopped patting the bed, pointed at Liberty, and asked the bodyguards to throw Liberty out. Liberty turned to look at the two bodyguards: ¡°If you can knock me out, carry me out, then do it, if you can¡¯t knock me out, you go out.¡± Two bodyguards: ¡°¡­¡± They exchanged nces, deciding not to take the initiative and stun Liberty. Just kidding, this was the darling of the Fourth Young Master, how dare they knock Liberty unconscious. Duncan: ¡°Which one of you will do it?¡± ¡°He.¡± ¡°He.¡± Both bodyguards pointed at each other. Libertyughed and said, ¡°Or, you two can decide with rock, paper, scissors.¡± Duncan¡¯s face was dark. The two bodyguards really used rock-paper-scissors to decide, and the bodyguard who lost in the end had no choice but to step forward, as if he was about to m Liberty unconsciously. ¡°You two just hold her up and drag her out.¡± Before the bodyguard could do anything, Duncan spoke. ¡°Fourth young master, Ms. Liberty is the elder sister of Ms. Serenity and we really dare not offend her. In case Ms. Serenity says we took advantage of Ms. Liberty, we really can¡¯t wash ourselves off by jumping into the Yellow River.¡± The bodyguard said with a bitter face: ¡°Fourth young master, you also know that Mr. Zachary is crazy about his wife, and If Ms. Serenity say that we took advantage of Ms Liberty, then we¡¯ll finish. Young master, since we have served the Lewis family for so many years, please save us.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± To be honest, he actually didn¡¯t want the two bodyguards to touch Liberty. ¡°Liberty, what exactly do you want? If you want to see me in a mess, you have already seen it, and you can go out.¡± Duncan changed into a begging, ¡°Please, can you go out? I don¡¯t want to see you!¡± The two bodyguards listened to the fourth young master¡¯s words, knowing that they would not be needed here, they backed away quietly little by little. Back and forth, they exited the ward. There were still only Duncan and Liberty in the ward. N?velDrama.Org content rights. ¡°If you want me to go out, you can drink the tonic soup in the insted lunch box first, and then I will go out after drinking.¡± Since Liberty decided to take care of Duncan and let him treat his legs seriously, she must stick to it. No matter what Duncan said, she always heard it from the left ear and out from the right ear. As long as Duncan didn¡¯t attack her, she won¡¯t be afraid. Being scolded a few times by Duncan will not lose a piece of meat. Duncan stared at her with a dark face. ¡°I¡¯m not afraid of you staring, the sry that your mom gave me is very high, where can I find such a high-paying job, for the sake of money, you stared me into a wasp¡¯s nest, I-I¡¯m not afraid.¡± Liberty took the insted lunch box, opened the lid, and asked him, ¡°Are you drinking it by yourself or shall I feed you?¡± ¡°Help me up!¡± Duncan ordered her with a dark face. Chapter 1712 Chapter 1712 Chapter 1712 ¡°Okay!¡± Liberty readily agreed. She got up, put the insted lunch box back on the bedside counter, and then helped Duncan to sit up. Duncan was tall and burly, although he had lost a lot of weight, he was still very heavy. He deliberately did not use his own strength, and Liberty would do it all. Thest time Liberty was injured, it took several months to fully recover. When she was recuperating, she did not do heavy work, and her strength was not as good as before. It took her a lot of effort to help Duncan up. Duncan also felt ufortable. Liberty was not strong enough, and it was difficult for Duncan to exert strength because of his leg pain. At the beginning, Duncan did not use any force on purpose, butter he wanted to sit up quickly, because it was difficult for Liberty to help him sit up, so he quickly cooperated with her. Mainly, Duncan couldn¡¯t bear her closeness. This was his favorite woman. Liberty: ¡°Mr. Lewis, will your legs hurt like this?¡± Duncan¡¯s face was ugly, ¡°Why doesn¡¯t it hurt? It hurts even if you move.¡± Liberty: ¡°I¡¯m sorry, I don¡¯t have enough strength to lift you all at once.¡± Liberty took a few breaths, then pulled up the bedside barrier from the end of the bed, and then propped up the small table for the patient to eat, and then put the insted lunch box on the small table. Liberty: ¡°Mr. Lewis, try this soup to see if it suits you.¡± Duncan said tly: ¡°I have a spoon, help me find the spoon.¡± Liberty said oh. When she was looking for a bowl just now, Liberty saw a spoon. After finding the spoon and cleaning it, she handed the spoon to him. After tossing for so long, Duncan felt hungry. But he still said with a cold face: ¡°I¡¯m done drinking the soup, you go out right away.¡± Liberty: ¡°Well, I¡¯ll go out. You drink the soup quickly, while it¡¯s hot. It won¡¯t taste good when it gets cold, and you¡¯ll have diarrhea after drinking it.¡± Liberty urged him to drink the soup quickly. When Duncan started to drink the soup, Liberty said gently: ¡°Mr. Lewis, we are all concerned about you, not to see you in distress, your injury will recover, the doctor said you can recover as usual, you can¡¯t give up on yourself.¡± Duncan looked up at her, and said coldly: ¡°If you talk again, I won¡¯t drink the soup.¡± Liberty: ¡°Okay, okay, I won¡¯t talk, you drink, you drink slowly.¡± Duncan lowered his head and drank the soup again. Liberty didn¡¯t know if it¡¯s because he was too hungry, or the soup she made was delicious. After Duncan drank a few sips, he couldn¡¯t stop and kept drinking until he finished a whole lunch box of bone soup, even the dregs. ¡°How is it? Is it good?¡± Liberty asked warmly. But Duncan said: ¡°You can go out now.¡± Liberty smiled, took the insted lunch box, got up, and said to him: ¡°Mr. Lewis, look at me, I¡¯m leaving now.¡± After finishing speaking, she took the insted lunch box, and left the ward. After leaving the ward, she went to the pantry to get some boiling water, and then came back to clean the insted lunch box in the bathroom. After washing the lunch box, she entered the ward again. Putting down the insted lunch box, he said, ¡°Mr. Lewis, I¡¯m here again.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± This woman! It¡¯s just to bully Duncan that he couldn¡¯t walk now, and there¡¯s nothing he could do with her!N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Chapter 1713 Chapter 1713 Chapter 1713 Duncan took a deep breath, took another deep breath, and told himself not to be angry. The woman didn¡¯t care if he was angry or not. He was so angry that he pped the bed just now, and when he asked her to go out, she could sit in front of his bed calmly and watch him p the bed. Duncan was half-dead with anger, but Liberty was calm, and even looked at him like she was watching a monkey show. Duncan would face it. He didn¡¯t want to lose face in front of Liberty like he did just now. ¡°Liberty.¡± Duncan stared at Liberty with ck eyes like torches, his eyes suppressed his feelings for her, and he said coldly: ¡°You have seen me now, and for now, I don¡¯t need you, you can leave.¡± Liberty came over, sat down on the chair in front of the bed, and looked at him with a N?velDrama.Org content rights. smile. After she lost weight, she regained her pre-marriage beauty. Her smile was beautiful andforting. Duncan suppressed his anger involuntarily. ¡°Mr. Lewis, are your listening andprehension skills okay?¡± Liberty asked him. Duncan said with a cold face: ¡°I have injuries all over my body, but it didn¡¯t affect my hearing andprehension.¡± Other injuries on his body had improved, except for his severely injured legs, which were still very painful. ¡°That¡¯s good. I think your listening andprehension skills are both problematic. I will pay Mrs. Lewis more money. I told your dad as soon as I came in that I was hired by your mother to take care of you. You can treat me as a nurse.¡± ¡°Mrs. Lewis gave me a daily sry of 10,000. I work eight hours. I don¡¯t need to go to work at night. I will leave work naturally. I don¡¯t need you to chase me away. If I leave now, I¡¯m afraid Mrs. Lewis will detain me. Therefore, for the sake of my sry, I can only guard you here. The daily sry of $10,000 a day is more than two or three days of turnover in my breakfast shop. It is very valuable.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± He dared to say that she would not ask for a penny. However, it was possible that his mother told her to give her $10,000 a day and asked her to take care of him. ¡°I know you don¡¯t want to see me. You shouldn¡¯t be hungry after drinking so much soup. You can close your eyes and rest. If you close your eyes, even if I dangle in front of you, you can¡¯t see me.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­¡± He only now knew that Liberty¡¯s eloquence was not bad at all. Her mouth was sharp. Duncan closed his eyes angrily, he really didn¡¯t want to look at Liberty. Liberty sat for a while, then got up, went to the family¡¯s bed andy down. She had been busy all morning and was also tired. Before Duncan fell asleep, Liberty fell asleep first. Duncan opened his eyes and turned his head to look at her. He saw that she was asleep without a quilt. Although the weather was hot, the air conditioner was turned on 24 hours a day in the ward, so it was easy to catch cold when she fell asleep. Duncan wanted to get out of bed to help Liberty cover a thin quilt, but he couldn¡¯t get off the ground and walk. He touched his legs in frustration. If he couldn¡¯t recover, he would be in a wheelchair for the rest of his life, and he couldn¡¯t even cover her with a quilt, how could he give her happiness again? It¡¯s better to stay away while she was not in love with him. Chapter 1714 Chapter 1714 Chapter 1714 -As long as Duncan treated her indifferently, appeared arrogant and unreasonable, was more violent and capricious, he would definitely make her leave. It could also change his image in her heart. That way, when she met someone she liked in the future, she could marry the person she liked without any psychological burden. Thinking of this, Duncan swore secretly that even if Liberty came to take care of him every day, he would have a way to make Liberty not even want a daily sry of $10,000, and stay away from him. There was no movement in the ward, and Mrs. Lewis gently opened the door toe in to see what happened. What she saw was his son tilting his head, quietly looking at Liberty who was lying asleep on the family bed. Mrs. Lewis suddenly felt that it was right for her to invite Liberty to take care of her son. As long as the son still loved Liberty, and Liberty took action, the son would be able to eat and sleep before doing rehabilitation. Sensing that someone wasing, Duncan immediately turned his head, saw that it was his mother, he was silent for a moment, and then asked his mother: ¡°Mom, Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Liberty said, you spent $10,000 a day to ask her to take care of me? ¡° ¡°Yes, didn¡¯t you say that it was Liberty who caused you to be like this? Since she caused you, let her take care of you until you recover as usual. Mom will also pay the sry of 300,000 a month. I can afford it.¡± Duncan choked, and said: ¡°Mom, you¡¯re getting old and can¡¯t bear it anymore, so you can go home and rest, just arrange for someone to take care of me, and you wille to see me every few days, and you don¡¯t have toe every day.¡± Seeing his parents with gray and white manes, Duncan felt ufortable. ¡°Duncan, it¡¯s not that Mom and Dad don¡¯t want to take care of you, Mom just thinks Liberty should be responsible for this matter.¡± Mrs. Lewis spoke out of conscience. ¡°This matter has nothing to do with Liberty, it¡¯s my fault.¡± Duncan said nasty things in his mouth, ming Liberty for causing him to have a car ident, it was to force Liberty to leave, to prevent Liberty from seeing him embarrassed and vulnerable look. But when he heard that his mother had also med Liberty, he couldn¡¯t help but speak up for Liberty. Mrs. Lewis: ¡°You said it was Liberty who caused your car ident. You said that, and you said it several times.¡± Duncan was speechless by his mother. Seeing that Liberty was not covered with a quilt, Mrs. Lewis walked over, picked up the thin quilt, and gently covered Liberty¡¯s body. Looking at Liberty¡¯s sleeping face, Mrs. Lewis said softly: ¡°Liberty is also very tired. She is in the breakfast business and needs to get up early. Sonny doesn¡¯t live with her now and he goes to Zachary¡¯s house to spend the night because she can¡¯t take care of Sonny. She has been busy all morning, and she still has toe over to take care of you, even more tired and sleepy. Duncan, if you feel sorry for Liberty, you can rest in peace of mind to recover from your injuries. You have recovered from your injuries, only then can she have a good rest. She is taking money to do things now, she has a sense of responsibility, and she will take care of this matter.¡± Liberty refused to take money, but it did not prevent Mrs. Lewis from using this matter to deceive her son. Besides, Liberty told Duncan the same way, saying that she was doing things with money. Duncan remained silent. Mrs. Lewis went to look at the insted lunch box Liberty brought again, and seeing that it was empty, she turned her head and asked her son, ¡°Have you drank the bone soup that Liberty brought?¡± Duncan said angrily, ¡°This woman doesn¡¯t keep her promise, I agreed, I drank the soup, and she left, she walked for a while, and came back within ten minutes.¡± Hearing her son¡¯sints, Mrs. Lewis wanted tough. Liberty was really her son¡¯s nemesis. In the final analysis, it was because his son cared about Liberty that he was willing to drink the soup, otherwise, if he didn¡¯t want to drink it, no one would be able to persuade him to drink the soup. Mrs. Lewis held back her smile, and said, ¡°Liberty did it. She said that after you drank the soup, she would leave, but she didn¡¯t say that she was leaving the hospital. Since she walked away for a while, she did what she said. She didn¡¯t say she would leave and note back.¡± Duncan choked again. Knowing that his mother and Liberty were of one mind at this moment, it was useless for him to say anything. Who told him to lie on the bed like a disabled person and couldn¡¯t move? Chapter 1715 Chapter 1715 Chapter 1715 -Elisa and Serenity each drove a car into the Stone family¡¯s big vi. As soon as the two people¡¯s vehicles were parked in the small open-air parking lot, the neighbors had been staring at them for a long time, and Remy, who was waiting, came over. Remy was also holding a bouquet of bright roses and a set of jewelry. Elisa got out of the car and saw an unfamiliar car parked not far away. It looked familiar but she couldn¡¯t remember whose car it was. She turned her head to ask the maid who opened the door for her, but seeing Remy walking towards her with a bouquet of flowers and a red bag in her hand, she couldn¡¯t helpughing. Elisa: ¡°Remy, you¡¯re here!¡± After Remy came from Annenburg, the two had a meal together. Remy needed to be busy for a while, and Elisa wisely didn¡¯t disturb his work, besides She and Serenity were also very busy. N?velDrama.Org content rights. When Elisa was busy with her career, she really didn¡¯t have much time to think about love. ¡°I just came here.¡± Remy walked up to Elisa, handed the dazzling bouquet of roses to Elisa, and said, ¡°I came from thepany, passed by a flower shop, and saw the roses in the flower shop were very beautiful, and I bought a bunch for you.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you buy it for me?¡± Elisa teased him while taking the bouquet. Remy smiled, ¡°No, as long as I am in Wiltspoon, I will send you flowers every day. Even if I am not there, I will call the flower shop to order a bouquet and ask them to deliver it to you.¡± He replied that¡¯s what Annenburg did during that time. People were not in Wiltspoon, but the pursuit of her would not stop. Remy handed the set of jewelry to Elisa again, and said, ¡°This is a newly designed style in the jewelry store opened by my sister-inw in Meadspring. It is not yet on the market. I bought a set from my sister-inw. Here it is.¡± Elisa took the set of jewelry again, ¡°Isn¡¯t your sister-inw still in confinement, and still manages the business of the jewelry store?¡± Elisa was aware of Jane¡¯s long residence in Annenburg and the fact that her twin brother handled the majority of the Meadsprings¡¯ business. ¡°Mrs. Lafayette delivered it. Young Master Lafayette instead took his newlywed wife on her honeymoon while Mr. Lafayette had originally nned to take Mrs. Lafayette on a world tour. The family business has no one to manage it. The Lafayettes will hold off until their sister-inw gives birth to a baby.¡± Young Master Lafayette and his wife went out for their honeymoon, and they left for half a year, making his father half dead with anger. Young Master Lafayette argued that if he didn¡¯t take the chance to y for a few more months, how would he have time to spend with his wife in the future? He would assume responsibility for being the family¡¯s head when he returned. When Young Master Lafayette¡¯s father left the houseter, it didn¡¯t really matter because he could travel the world with his lovely mother since his father was about to retire. On the contrary, Young Master Lafayette and his wife were newlyweds, so the influence would be greater. Elisa let out a cry. Jane had a jewelry store in Meadspring, and Mrs. Lafayette was the chief designer. She heard that Mrs. Lafayette used to learn jewelry design, but she was favored by the head of the blue house early on, and married back home to be the head of the house. She was a nobledy at home, and then went crazy for more than 20 years. Fortunately, Jane has been found, and the Mrs. Lafayette is well. When Jane wanted to invest in a jewelry store, Mrs. Lafayette acted as a jewelry designer for her daughter, Jane. In fact, it was a partnership between mother and daughter. But Mr. Lafayette didn¡¯t approve of his wife showing up in public to do business, but since it¡¯s rare for the couple to reunite, Mrs. Lafayette didn¡¯t dare to stop his wife from doing business anymore. Lest Mrs. Lafayette divorce Mr. Lafayette. The children were all on the side of Mrs. Lafayette. Chapter 1716 Chapter 1716 Chapter 1716 Elisa heard Remy mention the old couple, and was very interested in the story of the Lafayette family master and his wife, but it was the story of the Lafayette family master, and no one would dare to dig deeper unless he told it. The two walked to the vi together. Remy saw Serenity who was waiting not far away, holding Sonny by her arm, and asked Elisa with a smile, ¡°Are you and Mrs. York going to discuss business again?¡± It¡¯s marketable. In a few days, we¡¯ll probably have a business trip, so we can¡¯t just make money from people in Wiltspoon.¡± Both Elisa and Serenity were ambitious and nned to expand their business to other cities and viges. Remy immediately proposed and said: ¡°You can go to Annenburg for investigation. Many rural fields in our area are also deserted. The young people go out to work, and the old people take care of their grandchildren at home and grow some vegetables to eat. They seldom farm anymore.¡± Elisa smiled and said, ¡°Annenburg is a little far away from Wiltspoon. Our n is to develop neighboring cities first, and then gradually expand to further cities.¡± Remy: ¡°Let¡¯s see howpetitive the market in Annenburg is.¡± Elisa was not the only one investing in vegetable farms, there were vegetable farms in many ces. ¡°Thank you in advance.¡± Elisa thanked him. Remy smiled: ¡°It¡¯s a trivial matter, you¡¯re wee, I also have selfish intentions.¡± Remy hope that Elisa¡¯s business would develop into Annenburg, and they would be husband and wife in the future. Even in Annenburg, Elisa would still be busy with her own affairs, lest she felt too bored. Remy: ¡°You can also think about investing in other businesses. You are setting up a fruit and vegetablepany. With vegetables, you can also grow fruits. That¡¯s worthy of the name.¡± Elisa replied: ¡°Fruit cultivation yields a slower return.¡± Not as guaranteed as vegetable farming was the harvest. It was simple to have no harvest when the wind and rain were not always smooth. ¡°I¡¯ll think about other investments.¡± Since Elisa stepped into this circle, she naturally wouldn¡¯t stop at one project. Not to mention her, Serenity was also ambitious. Zachary sometimesined about the two, but now they got into the money pile, only thinking about how to develop their business and earn more money. They were not short of money yet. Elisa felt that she and Serenity liked that sense of aplishment. ¡°Remy.¡± Serenity approached the two of them, and she greeted Remy with a smile. Sonny also politely called ¡°Uncle Remy.¡± Remy took two steps forward and hugged Sonny. ¡°Sonny, I haven¡¯t seen you for a while. I miss you, Sonny.¡± Sonny looked at Remy and said, ¡°Uncle, I also miss you. Uncle, where have you been recently?¡± ¡°Your Uncle stayed home, because your uncle has be a real uncle, and two cute babies have been added to our family.¡± Sonny asked very interestedly: ¡°Uncle, Why didn¡¯t you bring two cute babies over for me to see? I also like cute babies.¡± Remy smiled and said, ¡°The babies are still very young and not suitable for going out. When the babies grow up a bit, I will bring them over to y with you. Sonny, when the timees, you¡¯ll y with the two little babies.¡± Sonny nodded fiercely, and promised: ¡°I will give them my toys to y with.¡±Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1717 Chapter 1717 Chapter 1717 Remy: ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re so kind, your uncle thanked you for the two babies.¡± Sonny smiled happily. Remy put down Sonny, Serenity took Sonny and went into the house with Elisa and the others. When Mrs. Stone heard that Serenity and Sonny wereing, she was very happy at first, and even greeted her at the door with a smile on her face. But when she saw Remy was also together, Mrs. Stone¡¯s smile faded away. Mrs. Stone thought that Remy had quit in spite of the difficulties, butter she found out that it was the youngest mistress of the Johnson family who had given birth. As soon as Remy returned to Wiltspoon, he had the cheek to visit again within two days. ¡°Auntie.¡± ¡°Auntie.¡± Serenity and Sonny greeted each other one after the other. ¡°Auntie.¡± Remy also greeted with a smile. Mrs. Stone red at Remy, then turned to Sonny, bent down to hug Sonny, and smiled, ¡°Sonny, you haven¡¯te to y at your aunt¡¯s house for a long time, your aunt miss you.¡± Sonny said childishly, ¡°I miss you auntie.¡± As Sonny spoke, he even blew a kiss to Mrs. Stone, which made Mrs. Stone very happy. She turned around holding Sonny and went back to the house, but didn¡¯t pay attention to Remy. Serenity nced at Remy, and saw that Remy¡¯s expression had not changed, and N?velDrama.Org content. Remy still had his usual smile on his face. Zachary said that when chasing his wife, his face could bepared with the city wall, because men understood men. Serenity followed Mrs. Stone¡¯s footsteps. Mrs. Stoneined softly to her: ¡°Remy is really thick-skinned.¡± Serenity also whispered: ¡°It shows that Remy is sincere to Elisa and really likes Elisa. For Elisa¡¯s sake, it¡¯s okay to be cheeky.¡± ¡°What? If it¡¯s because Auntie doesn¡¯t want him toe, he won¡¯t, and his feelings for Elisa are fake and you just spoke for him, I don¡¯t agree with any of the positive things you say about him because it¡¯s too far away.¡± Serenity: ¡°Auntie, Elisa is not a child; she is fully aware of this. I believe Elisa has a good eye for people, as the men she likes are all excellent. Yes, everyone knows that Remy is a good person.¡± Mrs. Stone choked, but could not refute her words. After a long while, Mrs. Stone said helplessly: ¡°How dare I stop so abruptly? Mrs. Lewis is my historical lesson. Now I only dare to move based on emotion and logic, and I no longer dare to stop abruptly.¡± Mrs. Stone had to ask Andrew for help. She tried her best to match Andrew and Elisa, but neither of them called, s. Andrew was indistinguishable from Remy in every respect, and he was a native of Wiltspoon. If Elisa were with Andrew, she would support the initiative with both hands and feet. Mrs. Stone saw Andrew as a son-inw, and the more she saw him, the more she liked him. ¡°Where¡¯s your sister?¡± Mrs. Stone asked about Liberty. Serenity then told Mrs. Stone that Mrs. Lewis asked Liberty for help. Mrs. Stone hugged Sonny and sat down on the sofa. After a moment of silence, she sighed, ¡°It¡¯s fine if you feel that you have a clear conscience.¡± Serenity said, ¡°I told my sister the same way.¡± Chapter 1718 Chapter 1718 Chapter 1718 After all, half of it was not said. ¡°Is Duncan still unwilling to meet people?¡± Mrs. Stone asked with concern. ¡°I apanied Zachary, but he refused to meet him. Zachary had sent him a message, but he refused to respond and did not answer his phone. He was always under the impression that we felt pity for him simply by looking at him.¡± Mrs. Stone sighed again. Elisa and Remy came in holding hands, Mrs. Stone took a look, and Remy let go. The future mother-inw has not epted Remy yet, so Remy and Elisa should not get too close in front of Mrs. Stone. After Elisa asked Remy to sit down, she walked away holding the bouquet by herself, and put the bouquet in a big vase. She also took the set of jewelry that Remy gave her back to her room first. When she went downstairs, she saw that everyone downstairs was chatting happily. The main reason was that with Sonny present, her mother was afraid that she would spoil Sonny, so she didn¡¯t dare to say a harsh word. Serenity and Sonny stayed in the Stone¡¯s house for a long time, and after dinner, Serenity took his nephew and left. Zachary had a social event at night, so he sent her a message to tell Serenity that he would not be home until 11 or 12 o¡¯clock in the night, and asked her to sleep first, so she didn¡¯t have to wait for him. Serenity took Sonny to the park to y, and went shopping, and took Sonny back to the vi on the top of the mountain around 9 o¡¯clock in the evening. Sonny was still a child. After ying all night, he was tired. After taking a bath, he climbed into bed by himself and after a while he slept soundly. Serenity waited for him to go to bed, then went into the study to do her business. Zachary said that there was no need to wait for him, but she couldn¡¯t help but want to wait for him toe back. Serenity would miss him and worried about him but Zachary was still at the Wiltspoon Hotel at this time. Zachary took his secretary, surrounded by bodyguards, and personally met his client, Mr. Dawson and his daughter, Miss Dawson, in the hotel. ¡°Mr. York, there is no need to send it away. Let¡¯s go back first and have dinner together tomorrow when we are free.¡± Mr. Dawson bought a vi in Wiltspoon. Every time he came to Wiltspoon for a business trip, he always lived in the vi under his name and did not live in a hotel. The Dawson Group had done a lot, and there was a project that was particrly popr recently. Manypanies were eyeing that project, and the York Corporation also wanted to take it down. Zachary himself could see how optimistic the York Corporation was about Mr. Dawson. Ms. Dawson next to Mr. Dawson, dressed in a professional suit, looked shrewd and capable without losing the charm of a woman. When her father was talking to Zachary, her eyes never left Zachary. Generally speaking, Zachary would not discuss business with young women. Ms. Dawson came here as Secretary of Mr. Dawson, and with Mr. Dawson present, Zachary acquiesced in Ms. Dawson¡¯s existence. Sensing that Ms. Dawson was looking at him all the time, Zachary felt displeased, but didn¡¯t show it on his face. From the moment they met, Ms. Dawson¡¯s gaze was always glued to Zachary, as if glued. Now who didn¡¯t know that Zachary had a wife? ¡°Okay, let¡¯s have dinner together tomorrow when I have time, Mr. Dawson.¡± Zachary politely responded to Mr. Dawson, who was still easy to talk to. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. The two of them were almost on the same page. Mr. Dawson stretched out his right hand and shook hands with Zachary again. After Ms. Dawson waited for her father to shake hands with Zachary, she also stretched out her right hand in front of Zachary. Out of politeness, Zachary shook hands with Ms. Dawson symbolically. Unexpectedly, when he withdrew his hand, Ms. Dawson traced his palm with her fingers. Zachary¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Analia.¡± Although Mr. Dawson didn¡¯t see his daughter drawing Zachary¡¯s palm, but seeing Zachary¡¯s face darkened, he guessed what his daughter had done, and he called her seriously. Chapter 1719 Chapter 1719 Chapter 1719 Analia said in a serious manner: ¡°Mr. York, goodbye.¡± Zachary sullenly remained silent. Analia just liked Zachary¡¯s stern look. She followed her father and met many bosses and rich generations. This was the first time she saw a man as outstanding as Zachary. She didn¡¯t look at Zachary¡¯s business skills, but only looks at Zachary¡¯s appearance. Handsome, stern and cold, the first sight aroused her desire to conquer. She wanted to conquer Zachary. She didn¡¯t mind if Zachary said or not. After her father said goodbye to Zachary, she followed him to their car. The driver opened the door, and the father and daughter got into the car. Mr. Dawson pressed the car window and waved goodbye to Zachary again. Zachary waved to Mr. Dawson. Mr. Dawson¡¯s luxury car quickly left the Wiltspoon Hotel. ¡°Analia, what did you do against the boss just now? His face suddenly darkened.¡± After pressing the car window, Mr. Dawson turned his head and asked his precious daughter. N?velDrama.Org content rights. Mr. Dawson had been married for decades, and because of his health, he only gave birth to one child, Analia. It was this daughter that he saw countless doctors and took countless medicines for conditioning, so that his wife became pregnant and gave birth to this precious daughter. His daughter was like him, she had been excellent in all aspects since she was a child. Mr. Dawson loved her deeply and trusted her very much. The huge Dawson Group would be handed over to her to take over in the future. Therefore, every time Mr. Dawson came out to discuss business or meet clients, he would take his daughter with him, which was equivalent to teaching her daughter by hand. ¡°Dad, I always fell in love with Mr. York at first sight.¡± Analia¡¯s words made Mr. Dawson want to vomit blood. Mr. Dawson couldn¡¯t help poking his daughter¡¯s forehead with his finger, ¡°Mr. York is married, it¡¯s not good for you to like him. It¡¯s not like you haven¡¯t heard of his legend, don¡¯t be addicted to him just because he looks good, He¡¯s a bit sensual, and before his wife, no one can impress his heart. Now that he¡¯s married, he¡¯s loyal to his marriage and loves his wife very much. If you like him, it¡¯ll not good.¡± Mr. Dawson reminded his daughter again: ¡°Mr. York is not suitable for you, and you can¡¯t take him down. If you like a man from the York family, change to another, Second Young Master York, oh, no, he has already Fiancee, besides the two, you can choose any of the young masters of the York family.¡± Mr. Dawson also admired the sons of the York family. The Dawson family was significantly poorer than the York family, which was the main factor. If the Dawson and York families were wed, it was a powerful partnership. The character of the York family¡¯s every member was also very good. If his daughter married a York family man, he didn¡¯t have to worry about his daughter not being able to keep the Dawson Group. With the York family as the backer, his daughter could take over the burden smoothly from him. ¡°Mr. York¡¯s wife, Serenity is a country bumpkin. She looks pretty, but she is not worthy of Mr. York in all aspects. So what if she has a rich aunt? Will the Stone family¡¯s property be given to her?¡± Analia said, ¡°In the past, I heard that Mr. York was not easy to get along with. After seeing him tonight, I think he is very nice and polite. Although he is a little cold, it¡¯s not that he can¡¯t be warmed up. Serenity can warm him up, I can¡¯tpare to that country bumpkin Serenity?¡± ¡°Analia!¡± Mr. Dawson called out his daughter¡¯s name sharply: ¡°Stop your idea immediately, don¡¯t fight Mr. York¡¯s idea again, if you think so, Dad will not bring you to appear in front of Mr. York from now on.¡± ¡°Dad, don¡¯t you think Mr. York is suitable for you as your son-inw?¡± Analia approached his father, took his father¡¯s arm, and said coquettishly, ¡°I haven¡¯t seen him in person. I didn¡¯t even know that I would fall in love with a man at first sight. Dad, can you help me? I just like Mr. York. Your daughter is so good, and only Mr. York is worthy of your daughter. Dad, You and Mom said that as long as I want, you will try your best to get it for me, if I want to marry, I will marry the best man, and Zachary is the best man I have ever seen.¡± Mr. Dawson face turned ck. Zachary didn¡¯t know what the father and daughter were talking about in the car. After the father and daughter left, he walked towards his Rolls Royce. The bodyguard team followed. Along the way, Zachary didn¡¯t speak. Jim, who was sitting in the passenger seat, turned his head to look at his young master a few times. Chapter 1720 Chapter 1720 Chapter 1720 Zachary: ¡°Jim, what did you see just now?¡± Jim replied without thinking: ¡°I saw Secretary Dawson hook the palm of the young master.¡± After speaking, Jim realized what he had said, and quickly changed his words: ¡°No, no, young master, I didn¡¯t see anything, really, I didn¡¯t see anything.¡± His young master, Zachary was so outstanding, he could easily win the hearts of young women, in order not to cause trouble, the young master had brought them by his side for so many years, Their main duty was to keep young women from getting close to the Young Master. Zachary didn¡¯t expect something unexpected to happen tonight. N?velDrama.Org content rights. ¡°In the future, don¡¯t let young women other than rtives appear within three meters of me!¡± Zachary felt that he had to keep young women other than rtives within three meters as before. He thought that everyone knew about his marriage with Serenity, so no one would think of him again. He was wrong. Some people still ignored his married status and tried to tease him and seduce him. If he could be seduced, he wouldn¡¯t be called Zachary. The only woman who could seduce him was Serenity. ¡°Yes.¡± Jim responded quickly, and then assured Zachary: ¡°Eldest young master, I will not talk nonsense in front of eldest young mistress.¡± Zachary stared at him coldly, ¡°I know you don¡¯t want to be dumb.¡± Jim¡¯s scalp tightened. He didn¡¯t want to be dumb, so he would never talk nonsense in front of the eldest mistress. It¡¯s not his turn to say it. Twenty minutester. Zachary¡¯s car drove into the vi. Seeing that the lights on the second floor were still on, Zachary knew that Serenity was not asleep yet. When Sam, the butler came out, Zachary asked him: ¡°The youngest mistress is not asleep yet?¡± ¡°The youngest mistress is still in the study. Let us not disturb her if we have nothing important to do.¡± Zachary lifted his foot into the room go. Sam asked Jim as usual: ¡°Did the young master encounter any unpleasant things?¡± Jim hesitated to speak. Sam¡¯s heart twitched, he looked at Jim, and asked in a low voice: ¡°What happened?¡± ¡°Sam, I don¡¯t want to be dumb, so don¡¯t ask me, ask the driver uncle.¡± The driver got out of the car, said: ¡°Sam, I didn¡¯t hear or see anything.¡± Jim: ¡°¡­¡± The driver was still smart. He picked up Sonny every morning, and only returned to the young master¡¯s side in the afternoon and evening, and he felt less conspicuous than before. Chapter 1721 Chapter 1721 In the end, The driver didn¡¯t dare to say that the young master was taken by the client¡¯s daughter, and even teased, so he ran away quickly. ¡°You br*t.¡± Sam scolded Jim, and turned his gaze to the driver. The driver yawned and said, ¡°Sam, I really didn¡¯t see or hear what the young master said, I was just driving.¡± ¡°Sam, it¡¯s gettingte, I¡¯m going back to rest too. Good night.¡± After the driver finished speaking, he strode away. The other bodyguards didn¡¯t know what happened at all. The person who was in the same car with the eldest young master was Jim. Aside from Jim¡¯s mention, they generally didn¡¯t know. Sam had no choice but to go back to the house. Zachary didn¡¯t stay on the first floor, he had already gone upstairs. He came to the study and knocked lightly on the door. Maybe Serenity was too busy, didn¡¯t hear any movement outside, didn¡¯t know that Zachary hade back, heard the knock on the door, thought it was Sam who came to persuade her to rest. She responded to the people outside: ¡°Sam, I will go to rest soon.¡± The study door was pushed open. Zachary walked in from the outside. Hearing the familiar footsteps, Serenity looked up and saw that it was Zachary. She looked at the time again, and then started to operate theputer. After turning off theputer, she got up and greeted Zachary, ¡°I¡¯m back.¡± Zachary walked In front of her and looked at her deeply. Serenity looked at him, feeling strange. It¡¯s been a long time since Zachary looked at her with such eyes. When they first got married, when they were unfamiliar with each other, Zachary would look at her with such deep eyes, which always made her puzzled. ¡°Zachary, why are you looking at me like this?¡± Serenity asked him curiously. The next moment, she was embraced by Zachary¡¯s strong arms. She¡¯s nesting passively in his strong arms, smelling the familiar scent on his body, feeling the strong beating of his heart, and feeling how much he cared for her. Serenity didn¡¯t seem to have done anything to scare him recently, did she? Zachary wanted a love letter, and Serenity had already written it to him. Serenity also deliberately searched a lot of beautiful poems on the Inte and copied them. There was no way, she really couldn¡¯t write love letters. She had never written before and had no experience. Apart from being able to write ¡°I love you¡±, she didn¡¯t know what to write. The first love letter she wrote to him, she couldn¡¯t exin it in three words, right? That¡¯s why she went to the Inte to copy some poems and wrote a love letter with over a thousand words to him. After Zachary received and read it, he never asked her to write a love letter again. Then, she also made a lot of new clothes for him, which were avable all year round, and also gave him a new watch, and gave him a small gift almost every day. It made sense that she effectively coaxed him. What¡¯s going on now? Serenity looked up at him, ¡°Husband, what¡¯s wrong with you? Did you encounter a problem at work? Tell me, although I am not as good as you but I can help you relieve your worries.¡± Zachary shook his head slowly.Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1722 Chapter 1722 Chapter 1722 It¡¯s not a matter of work. Serenity¡¯s beautiful eyes twinkled, and she asked him again: ¡°What¡¯s the matter? You said, we are husband and wife, there is nothing to hide. You also said that no matter what happens in the future, you will never hide it from me again.¡± ¡°Wife.¡± Zachary said in a low voice, ¡°I was teased.¡± Serenity was dumbfounded. Did she hear it wrong? Anyone dare to tease Zachary? He put on a coffin face all day long outside, exuding an aura of keeping strangers away from him, and he was followed by a team of bodyguards when he went in and out, preventing strangers from approaching him casually. How could it be possible to be teased? Serenity thought about it and asked, ¡°Is it a man? The other party is gay, have you taken a fancy to you?¡± Serenity felt that only if Zachary was of the same s-e-x would he allow others to approach him, and the other party would have a chance to flirt with him. After Zachary was silent, his voice was still low: ¡°It¡¯s a woman. I¡¯m talking about business with a client tonight. Mr. Dawson, that is, Mr. Dawson¡¯s female secretary is also his only daughter, Analia. She hooked me when she shook hands with me.¡± Then, Zachary let go of Serenity¡¯s hand, raised his right hand that was hooked by Analia, andined to his wife: ¡°Wife, it¡¯s this hand, it was sketched.¡± Seeing his aggrieved and disgusted look, Serenity found it funny and a little irritating. Although the couple had not held a wedding yet, it had already been officially announced. Who didn¡¯t know that they were a legal couple? Touching his handsome face, and looking at his suit and leather shoes, he was mature, calm, shrewd, capable, and all the words to describe a sessful career were suitable for him. His whole body exuded a dignified aura. Such an excellent man was a ma in himself, and he could be the focus of attention wherever he went. It¡¯s typical for someone to like him and fall in love with him, as she did. No one liked him, and that¡¯s not normal. Most people like beautiful things. He¡¯s beautiful, and that¡¯s what people like. Serenity held his right hand, looked at his palm, and said with a smile, ¡°Shall I wash your hands for you?¡± Zachary didn¡¯t speak, and acquiesced. Serenity dragged him into the bathroom, put some hand sanitizer on his palm, scrubbed him several times, and then washed it repeatedly on the washbasin. After a while, she said, ¡°It¡¯s been washed clean without leaving any trace.¡± Zachary¡¯s handsome face was still tense. Serenity pulled him out and sit down on the sofa in the study. Serenity turned her head to look at him, ¡°Are you still angry?¡± She touched his face, touched it and pinched it twice, ¡°Whether it¡¯s a man or a woman, if you look too good-looking, it¡¯s easy to be a disaster.¡± Zachary: ¡°The appearance is natural, but not perfect, what can I do? You can¡¯t disfigure yourself just because of some sluts.¡± ¡°Of course not, why would you disfigure yourself for others?¡± Serenity pulled up his right hand. She kissed his palms, and said, ¡°I¡¯ll help you erase the traces of that woman, don¡¯t look disgusted, you can¡¯t chop off your right palm.¡± Zachary: ¡°By the way, that Ms. Dawson is quite courageous. Even she dared to tease me. Aren¡¯t you apanied by Jim and the others? You are usually not young women when you talk about business.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Everyone knew Zachary¡¯s taboo, the bosses who wanted to discuss business with him would never bring a young and beautiful secretary, most of them brought a male secretary or their own wives. Zachary: ¡°I¡¯m already married, who would have thought that¡­ married men are not safe.¡± Serenityughed, ¡°It is even more unsafe for married men. You are mature, steady, sessful in your career, and many young girls just like charming person like you, who shout the slogan of pursuing true love, regardless of other people¡¯s wives, and meddle in other people¡¯s marriages.¡± Chapter 1723 Chapter 1723 Chapter 1723 Serenity: ¡°As long as you are entertaining, I will apany you and dere my ownership to everyone. You are mine alone, and if anyone tries to steal my man, I will beat them until their teeth are broken.¡± Zachary: ¡°Wife, You speak like you are coaxing a child.¡± Serenity: ¡°Then what do you want me to say?¡± Zachary stopped talking again. Serenity put her arms around him, leaning his upper body on his chest, and said in a soft voice, ¡°Husband, don¡¯t be angry, I will do what I say, and I will apany you to socialize from now on, and won¡¯t let others touch you again. Actually, I am under a lot of pressure. You are so good, and the reality between me and you is so different. In the eyes of many strong women, I am not worthy of you. They look down on me and always want to take my ce. After we got together, I didn¡¯t meet a rival in love, but when I have a rival in love, my rival in love must be very powerful, and I have to do my best to keep you.¡± If Serenity couldn¡¯t keep it, she gave up. Zachary: ¡°Are you thinking that if you can¡¯t keep it, you will hand me over to others?¡± As expected of a husband and wife, Zachary knew exactly what her wife was thinking. Serenity cursed in his heart: Can this guy read minds? On the lips, Serenity repeatedly denied: ¡°How is it possible? My man, how could I give it away? However, if you don¡¯t like me and like someone else, then there is no need to fight. Let¡¯s get together and get divorced. And we can still be friends.¡± There used to be good times, and she didn¡¯t want to be enemies after divorce. Therefore, if Zachary had someone he liked outside of school like Hank and thought it was his true love, Serenity wouldn¡¯t want to make a fuss, would break up peacefully, and would fulfill him. N?velDrama.Org content rights. It¡¯s not that Serenity couldn¡¯t live without a man, she could still live happily without him. Zachary bit her face, which hurt her a little. Zachary: ¡°Serenity, my heart is very small. I can only pretend to be you. In this life, I will never fall in love with a woman other than you. I happy when I am with you, fortunately? Marriage is like drinking water, knowing whether it is warm or not. Others think you are not good enough for me, but I think you are good enough.¡± Zachary stopped her while talking After entangled with her lips and tongue, he picked her up and went back to their room. It was a night of passion. The next day. When Zachary woke up, he habitually touched his side, but didn¡¯t touch anyone, Serenity got up before him. He sat up, looked at the pillow beside him, and muttered: ¡°Last night, I was tired of shouting and begging for mercy, but today she got up earlier than me, and she lied to me again.¡± During the day, both husband and wife have their own things to be busy with. He just spared her. If it was a weekend, he would always have a full meal before letting her go. Sliding off the bed, Zachary wanted to open the curtains, but saw an envelope on the bedside table, took the envelope, and took out a piece of paper from it. ¡°Love Letter¡± was written on the very top of the paper. Zacharyughed immediately. Serenity didn¡¯t know how to write love letters, her love letters were copied poems. Regardless of whether it was suitable or not, she felt that the poems were rted to love, so she copied them all, made them into a hodgepodge, and handed them to him. However, this time the love letter did not copy poetry, but wrote: ¡°Zachary, I love you, just like a mouse loves rice.¡± Just one sentence. Chapter 1724 Chapter 1724 Chapter 1724 It was better than the beautiful poems she copied. There were words on the back of the letter paper. He turned over to look. It said: ¡°I¡¯m running outside in the morning, we¡¯ll have breakfast togetherter.¡± Zachary happily folded the letter paper, stuffed it back into the envelope, then opened the drawer, and put the love letter in the drawer. He got up, walked to the window, opened the heavy curtains, and the sun shone in in an instant. In summer, the morning sun could make people feel dazzling. After the hot summer, cool autumn would be ushered in, and it was also the day when he and Serenity hold their wedding. What Zachary was looking forward to more was the arrival of the crystallization of love between him and Serenity. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. The master told the young couple with certainty that the crystallization of their love would be reported in autumn, and before that time, no matter how loving the couple was, the child would note. Young¨CJohnson of FC & Co. now had a pair of sons and daughters, which made Zachary really envious. When the child was full moon, he would take Jane to drink full moon wine. They would also go to the Hundred Days Banquet. Zachary thought, how about he mention it to Young¨CJohnson, he would be the godfather of the two children, so that he could enjoy Young¨CJohnson¡¯s joy, and see if he and Serenity could have a pair of twins? If Serenity couldn¡¯t give birth to twins, it would be nice if she could give birth to a daughter. This was the wish of their entire York family, and they just hoped that Serenity would have a daughter. Of course, Zachary would not say these things in front of Serenity. Every time children were mentioned, even other people¡¯s children, Serenity would think of herself. After being married for so long, she and Zachary were also very affectionate. The bed sheets had been rolled countless times, but she didn¡¯t find a child. In particr, Jasmine was pregnant during the honeymoon, which made Serenity even more stressed. No one dared to say a word about the child in front of her. He¡¯s afraid she¡¯s going into a dead end again. Zachary was worried that his wife would be so busy, that he would allow her to be so busy. When she was busy, she would not think about the children. Zachary saw his beloved wife. Wearing sportswear and sneakers, she ran in the yard, her long hair tied up fluttered left and right as she ran. Zachary¡¯s eyes followed Serenity¡¯s figure. After a while, he turned away from the window. After a while, he too changed into his tracksuit and went downstairs. Serenity ran around twice, and was nning to go back to the house, but when she saw Zacharying out, she smiled and waited for him to approach, ¡°I wanted to go back to the house, why don¡¯t I run two moreps with you?¡± Serenity added: ¡°Has Sonny woke up?¡± Zachary ran slowly side by side with her, asking about his nephew while running. ¡°Not yet, when I got up, he was still sleeping.¡± Zachary hummed. He asked her again: ¡°Do you want to go to the hospital to see Duncan togetherter?¡± Duncan didn¡¯t want to see them, and Zachary still had to go to the hospital every day. Friends for many years, iron buddies. Before Duncan fully recovered, Zachary wanted to visit him because he really cared about Duncan¡¯s injury and sincerely hoped that Duncan would get well soon. Chapter 1725 Chapter 1725 Chapter 1725 Zachary didn¡¯t feel surprised, Mrs. Lewis¡¯s intestines turned green with regret for Duncan¡¯s current condition, she would be willing to make Duncan get better, even if she was asked to kneel down and beg Liberty. ¡°Is Duncan willing to see sister?¡± Zachary asked with concern. Serenity: ¡°I didn¡¯t ask, but if my sister decides to take care of Mr. Lewis, she will always have a way to enter the ward.¡± As expected of a real sister, Serenity knew her sister very well. Zachary hummed, ¡°I hope Duncan won¡¯t be so stubborn and recover soon.¡± Thinking of Duncan in the past, andparing him with him now, Zachary could understand Duncan¡¯s mood. If it were him, he would probably find it difficult regain confidence. Zachary: ¡°He will be fine.¡± Serenity said to him, ¡°Let¡¯s run around a couple more times. When Sonny gets up, we will have breakfast together and let Jim take him to ss. Summer vacation will be soon, and my bookstore will be closed soon and it will be closed for two months. Husband, what do you think about the summer vacation?¡± During her summer vacation in previous years, she would go out to travel to appreciate the great rivers and mountains of the mothend. ¡°Summer vacation is for students. I¡¯m a working person, so I don¡¯t have summer vacation.¡± Zachary smiled while jogging: ¡°If you have a ce you want to go, tell me, and I will start working overtime now. As soon as I arrive, I can apany you to go out.¡± Serenity: ¡°Yes, I am also very busy now, unlike before, when students are on vacation, I will also be on vacation.¡± Serenity was a little tired after running a fewps, so she switched to walking. She said, ¡°Let¡¯s talk about itter, Sonny is three years old now, and I want to take him out to broaden his horizons. After the summer vacation, he will be in the middle ss of kindergarten.¡± ¡°Well, we¡¯ll arrange the time when you think it over, and we¡¯ll go to Annenburg a few times, the two children in the nightclub are full moon, we¡¯ll definitely go there, and we¡¯ll also go to the 100-day banquet Let¡¯s go a few more times to enjoy their joy.¡± Zachary felt that he and Young¨CJohnson had taken the same path, and now that Young¨CJohnson had a pair of twins, maybe he could have a pair of twins in the future. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll remember. The presents are all ready, and the two children have been given golden locks.¡± Serenity added Jane¡¯s WhatsApp, and Jane sent her the photos of the two babies. Although two babies were thin and small, they looked very cute. babies were looking different every day, and every few days, she asked Jane to send her a photo to feast her eyes on. Serenity: ¡°I made an appointment with Jane. I¡¯m the godmother of two children.¡± Zachary smiled. He knew she would do it. The couple returned to the house after finishing their morning run. Sonny had awoken earlier. He removed his pajamas and dressed. He put on the disorganized clothes by himself. He also wore the shoes himself, but they didn¡¯t wear them backwards. Sonny had good hands-on ability. ¡°auntie, uncle.¡± Seeing his aunting back, Sonny called out softly, walked up to Zachary, raised his head, stretched out his hand, and called softly: ¡°Uncle, hug me.¡± Zachary bent down and hugged Sonny. Sonny immediately put his head on Zachary¡¯s shoulder. ¡°Seren, does Sonny have a fever? I hold him and feel that he is very hot.¡± Zachary gently pushed Sonny¡¯s small body away so that he could touch Sonny¡¯s forehead. Touching Sonny¡¯s forehead, he felt that his body temperature was a little high. When he said this, Serenity immediately touched Sonny¡¯s forehead, her body temperature was a little high, she asked her nephew: ¡°Sonny, do you feel unwell?¡±Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 1726 Chapter 1726 Zachary: ¡°He must be ufortable. Serenity, you go get the thermometer and help him measure the temperature.¡± As one might expect, Serenity had already gone and gotten the thermometer so she could help Sonny take his temperature. After a few minutes. Zachary took out the thermometer from Sonny¡¯s armpit and handed it to Serenity. Serenity raised the thermometer and looked at it, and said, ¡°At 38.3 degrees, he really does have a fever. I put my hand on his forehead and felt that it wasn¡¯t too hot. When I took a test, it was so high. I¡¯ll go upstairs to change clothes and take him to the hospital right away. Also I¡¯ll call the teacher and ask for leave for him.¡± Serenity took out her mobile phone and called the teacher to ask for leave for Sonny. Zachary said: ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Let¡¯s see what physical cooling does, and then we¡¯ll call the family doctor toe look.¡± ¡°It¡¯s also possible.¡± Serenity turned around and poured a ss of warm water for her nephew, ¡°Sonny,e here, Drink a ss of water, if you have a fever, drink more warm water.¡± Sonny nestled in Zachary¡¯s arms, looking bored. Serenity sat down and held a water ss for Sonny to drink. Sonny didn¡¯t want to drink after drinking half a ss. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, would you like some porridge?¡± Sonny nodded. Serenity got up, first went to get some antipyretic stickers for Sonny to put on, and then filled a bowl of porridge for Sonny to eat. Because of the difort, Sonny ate half a bowl and said no. No matter how much Serenity coaxed him, he refused to eat any more. Sonny had a fever. Although Serenity was not a mother, the little guy grew up under N?velDrama.Org content rights. her care after birth. The rtionship between aunt and nephew was not inferior to that between mother and child. She was anxious and asked Sonny to drink warm water for a while. After a while, she carried him upstairs to take a warm bath. She took Sonny¡¯s temperature every half an hour, and when she saw that the temperature hadn¡¯t dropped much, she became even more anxious, then went to the family medicine cab to search for antipyretics, brought thermometer, and took Sonny¡¯s temperature again. When the temperature dropped to thirty-eight degrees, she put down thermometer again and stopped taking medicine for Sonny for the time being. Seeing her anxious look, Zachary ordered Sam to call the family doctor. During this period, Jasmine didn¡¯t see Serenity going to the bookstore, so she sent a message to ask her. When Jasmine learned that Sonny had a fever, she replied to Serenity: ¡°Take good care of Sonny, I¡¯m in the store.¡± Serenity hadn¡¯t told Liberty yet, so as not to worry her, she was also very busy and tired now. Liberty had to take care of the business of All You Can Eat, and she had to go to the hospital to take care of Duncan. Serenity nned to inform Liberty if Sonny¡¯s fever subsided. ¡°Serenity, you go eat something first.¡± Zachary said, ¡°You haven¡¯t had breakfast yet.¡± Serenity: ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll go eat something first, and then I will rece you.¡± Sonny felt ufortable and clingy, refused to y on the ground, let him sit on the sofa, he had his mouth ttened. Zachary had to hold Sonny all the time. Serenity filled her stomach as fast as she could, then reced Zachary and asked Zachary to have breakfast. Soon, the family doctor came. The doctor stated after examining Sonny, ¡°He has caught a cold, and the temperature of the air conditioner should not be adjusted too low. Youngdy, what is the baby¡¯s temperature now?¡± ¡°After taking a warm bath just now, I wanted to feed him porridge. I took his body temperature and it dropped to 38 degrees. I touched his forehead and felt that his temperature dropped again a little bit.¡± Serenity answered the doctor, and she picked up the thermometer again to help Sonny take the temperature. Chapter 1727 Chapter 1727 The family doctor said: ¡°The oldest young mistress, I¡¯ll give the child some medicine, and his body temperature will droppletely. Don¡¯t give him medicine for the time being; if it doesn¡¯t go awaypletely, if he has recurring fevers, and his body temperature exceeds 38 degrees 5 degrees, then give him medicine. I¡¯ll return tomorrow to take a look.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t I need to give him medicine now?¡± Serenity asked. Zachary answered, ¡°Try not to take medicine if he can. All medicines are 30% poisonous.¡± Just got a shot and some medicine for some minor issues. It would be very problematic in the future if people developed drug resistance. Serenity also knew that she could try not to take medicine if she could, but every time Sonny was sick, she and her sister were very nervous and anxious, hoping that the child would get better soon, so the first thing they did was take the child to the doctor, get an infusion, or take medicine. A few minutester, Serenity took out the thermometer. After reading it, she breathed a sigh of relief and said, ¡°It¡¯s thirty-seven degrees eight.¡± Sonny Left his aunt¡¯s arms, and asked to eat dumplings. ¡°Okay, let¡¯s eat dumplings.¡± Serenity asked the family doctor again: ¡°Doctor, Sonny can be lowered by physical cooling, so he don¡¯t need to take medicine for the time being, right?¡± It was estimated that the air conditioner was turned on at night, kicking the quilt and catching a cold would cause a cold and fever. Serenity felt relieved. The Doctor prescribed medicine for Sonny for a day, exined a few more words, and then left. Serenity only called Liberty when she and Sonny were eating dumplings. N?velDrama.Org content rights. At this time, Liberty was already in the hospital. Duncan still ordered the bodyguards to keep Liberty out of the door. With the help of Mrs. Lewis like yesterday, Liberty swaggered into Duncan¡¯s ward like a r*scal. Duncan picked up the bouquet Liberty had just bought and threw it on the ground while saying something cold: ¡°Throw it out!¡± Liberty put down the insted lunch box, which contained the bone soup she made for Duncan today. Seeing that Duncan was about to reach out and overturn the insted lunch box again, Liberty quickly pushed the lunch box to the edge, so that Duncan would not be able to reach it. She just bent down to pick up the bunch of flowers, sat down on the chair in front of the bed, and said, ¡°Don¡¯t you like this bunch of flowers? It¡¯s very beautiful. I bought them at Spring Blossoms. The flowers there are all beautiful.¡± Duncan: ¡°I don¡¯t like it, throw it away, don¡¯t bring it into my room. I can¡¯t smell the scent of flowers, it stinks!¡± Liberty: ¡°I think it smells so good, I¡¯ll go out and buy a vaseter, put the flowers in the vase, If you don¡¯t want to be stink to death, just recuperate honestly and don¡¯t bother the people around you. The fragrance of flowers doesn¡¯t stink at all, why don¡¯t I buy a few durians and smell the fragrance of flowers?¡± Duncan stared at her. Liberty deliberately said: ¡°If you don¡¯t take good care of your injuries and get well soon, I will put a few durians and a few bunches of flowers in your ward every day to suffocate you to death.¡± Duncan remained silent with a dark face. Durian was his least favorite food because It smelled bad. Chapter 1728 Chapter 1728 Duncan looked at the insted lunch box, but Liberty just moved to the far side, so he couldn¡¯t get it because he has limited legs and feet and he was just so useless! Everyone encouraged him to let him recuperate well. The doctor said that he had a high chance of recovery, but he didn¡¯t say 100%. Who knew if he could recover? If he couldn¡¯t recover, he was like at this moment, trying to sweep the insted lunch box to the ground, but he couldn¡¯t do it. The insted lunch box seemed to have a mouth, and it was making fun of him. He didn¡¯t like the lunch box but couldn¡¯t get rid of it. Just as Duncan was about to get angry, Liberty¡¯s cell phone rang. Duncan saw her answering the phone and heard her call ¡°Serenity¡±, so he knew it was Serenity calling. When Serenity was listening to the phone, her attention was not on him, so Duncan dared to take off all his indifferent masks and looked at her greedily. When he liked someone, he couldn¡¯t wait to be with her 24 hours a day. He didn¡¯t want to see Liberty for more than ten days. Not seeing him every day was like three autumns. No one knew how much he missed her and how painful it was for him to treat her like this. Liberty came to take care of him for a long time yesterday, and Duncan felt that it was not enough. He knew that she would stille over today. Last night, he still missed her, thought about the way to go in the future, and couldn¡¯t sleep. Liberty: ¡°Sonny has a fever? What did the doctor say?¡± Sonny has a fever? There was distress in Duncan¡¯s eyes. It must be that Liberty took the time to take care of him, and Sonny would get sick if she didn¡¯t have time to take care of Sonny. It¡¯s all Duncan fault! N?velDrama.Org content. After Liberty ended the call, Duncan suppressed his feelings and asked her coldly: ¡°Why is Sonny having a fever? You go back and take care of him, don¡¯te to my ce.¡± ¡°Maybe the air conditioner caught cold at night, Serenity and brother-inw took care of him, and now his fever has subsided, so he doesn¡¯t need to take medicine. The family doctor of the York family showed him and prescribed medicine for preparation. He said that if the physical temperature can be lowered, he doesn¡¯t need to take medicine first.¡± When Sonny got a fever, she rushed him to the hospital to see a doctor and gave him medicine. This time Sonny caught a cold, and with Zachary by his side, he suggested that the temperature should be lowered physically first. Since the body temperature did not exceed 38¡ã5, he thought it was necessary to lower the temperature physically first. Liberty felt that her brother-inw was quite experienced in raising children, even though he usually looked serious, he was a man who liked children. It¡¯s just that her sister hadn¡¯t moved yet. She was worried, but she dared not talk about the child in front of her sister. Duncan felt relieved when he heard that Sonny¡¯s fever had subsided. But he still said: ¡°Go back and take care of Sonny, I don¡¯t need you here.¡± At the end, he added in a vicious voice: ¡°Seeing you makes me feel even worse. I don¡¯t want to see you. You go now and take care of your son!¡± ¡°Serenity will take care of Sonny, which makes me very happy. I¡¯ll go see Sonny after work.¡± Liberty took the insted lunch box and said with a smile: ¡°Mr. Lewis, you don¡¯t want to see me, but I want to see you because you represent me at work and I can make $300,000 a month, which is more than I can make by opening a shop. I don¡¯t have much money right now. I can¡¯t give up such a high sry because I still need to make money to buy a house for Sonny to go to school. He starts kindergarten in September. As you know, he goes to the best kindergarten in Wiltspoon, and the tuition for a year is all Six figures. Although I still have some savings, the speed of making money is not as fast as the speed of spending money. Fortunately, Mrs. Lewis gave me such a job, and my monthly ie is almost equal to my son¡¯s annual tuition. With money, I still want to change to a more expensive car, which is more comfortable, and I want to expand my business. The n is too big and I need too much money, so I have to work hard to make money.¡± Duncan was speechless. Liberty was so tired because she insisted on being self-reliant too much and refused to ept the help of her younger sister who married into a wealthy family Chapter 1729 Chapter 1729 Duncan felt sorry for Liberty, but he still didn¡¯t want to drag Liberty down, he said coldly: ¡°I said it, I will give $600,000 to you. $600,000 is double what my mother gave you, you leave now, immediately, immediately, leave me!¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, I will not want your $600,000. Mrs. Lewis invited me toe to work. It¡¯s a steady stream of water, and what you gave me was a one-off, so I¡¯m at a big loss. If you give me $600,000 a month for nothing, I¡¯m embarrassed to ept it, and I¡¯ll go to work to earn money, and I can spend it with peace of mind.¡± Duncan¡¯s face was full of ck lines, ¡°A long stream? Are you nning to work for the rest of your life?¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, With your current mentality, I think I can work for the rest of my life.¡± Duncan: ¡°¡­I will get better! I will definitely get better!¡± Liberty smiled, ¡°Mr. Lewis, It depends on whether you can cooperate with the treatment. If you continue like this, I doubt whether you can stand up again. If you sit in a wheelchair in your next life, It¡¯s inconvenient to go out, it¡¯s inconvenient to do things, when someone pushes you upstairs, you can¡¯t even go downstairs by yourself, just thinking about that scene makes me feel aggrieved. Mr. Lewis, you have always been high-spirited, you really let yourself live like that Aggrieved?¡± Duncan remained silent with a dark face. He could be cured, who didn¡¯t want to be cured. The problem was, the doctors were not sure that he would fully recover, although the doctors did not say that he would not recover, but only that the recovery time would be longer. Duncan lost his confidence when he thought of the long years of rehabilitation. Liberty: ¡°Mr. Lewis, are you hungry? Would you like some soup?¡± Duncan was silent for a long time before he said angrily: ¡°My mother spent $10,000 a day to ask you to take care of me, and you just send some soup every day? No food, no vegetables, take care of me like this! When will I get better?¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis, you¡¯re willing to eat, this is easy.¡± Liberty immediately walked out of the ward. Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Lewis were sitting outside, when they saw Libertying out, they thought that Liberty couldn¡¯t stand his son¡¯s bad temper atst, and ran out. Mrs. Lewis got up to meet Liberty, but she didn¡¯t know what to say. ¡°Your fourth young master wants to eat, one of you will go out and pack a fast food for him.¡± What Mrs. Lewis heard was that Liberty was ordering her bodyguards to go out and pack a fast food. The food sent by the family was overturned when Duncan lost his temper. The person who brought him food today was his elder brother, but he overturned the food in front of his elder brother, so angry that elder brother Lewis wanted to scold him, but his mother pushed elder brother Lewis out of the ward, lest the two brothers get up together dispute. The current Mrs. Lewispletely protected Duncan. No matter what Duncan did, she tolerated it and didn¡¯t let others criticize Duncan. ¡°I¡¯ll go, I¡¯ll go right away.¡± A bodyguard responded, turned around and left to pack fast food outside. The Fourth Young Master was finally willing to eat. Mrs. Lewis was also full of joy, and asked Liberty: ¡°Liberty, Duncan is willing to eat? He didn¡¯t eat anything except the soup you brought over yesterday, and he is still hungry.¡± ¡°Thank God, He is finally willing to eat. Liberty, thank you, thank you so much.¡± Mrs. Lewis took Liberty¡¯s hand and thanked her non-stop. She felt she had finally made the right decision. Liberty: ¡°Mrs. Lewis, you¡¯re wee. We all want Mr. Lewis to recover soon.¡± Mrs. Lewis nodded, but she was very grateful to Liberty in her heart.N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Chapter 1730 Chapter 1730 ¡°Liberty!¡± Duncan shouted in the ward. ¡°Mrs. Lewis, I¡¯ll go in and take a look.¡± Liberty gently withdrew her hand, turned around and went back to the ward. Mrs. Lewis did not follow in. As long as Liberty was around and Liberty didn¡¯t ask them to help, the couple had a tacit understanding not to go in and let the two of them get along alone. The son¡¯s attitude was bad, and his temper was not restrained, but the couple know that the son really wanted Liberty to stay and take care of him. After returning to her husband and sitting down, Mrs. Lewis sighed and said, ¡°I was too stubborn at first, and I will learn from Tania in the future. My son is not young anymore. Others at his age have children who are almost in junior high school. Our Duncan doesn¡¯t even have a girlfriend. It¡¯s rare for him to have someone he likes. It doesn¡¯t matter how many times Liberty has been divorced, as long as our son always likes her.¡± Mr. Lewis: ¡°You just don¡¯t listen to persuasion, now¡­you can only hope that Liberty can let Duncan build up confidence, cooperate with the treatment, and be discharged from the hospital for rehabilitation and recovery sooner.¡± Mrs. Lewis blushed, ¡°In our circle, most of the people here are the same as me, and how many people can be like Tania, who doesn¡¯t like or disapprove, and let the juniors make troubles on their own?¡± Not to mention their wealthy families, even ordinary people were very particr about being well-matched. If the family conditions were good, they must be looking for the same conditions. Who wanted to find a poor family? Young people were all about love first. They felt that they were full of love and drank water. If they were opposed by their families, they resisted desperately. When they were really married and had no passion after marriage, they could see each other¡¯s shorings and felt that it was difficult for people from different circles to mix together. Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯t think her objection was wrong. She was wrong in using too drastic means, which caused Duncan to have a car ident. Up to now, she still felt that the marriage should be of the right family, but she no longer insists that her son marry a woman of the right family. Serenity married into York¡¯s family; wasn¡¯t that also a lot of pressure? And now that she was desperately trying to make money and develop her career, wasn¡¯t it just to shorten the gap between her and Zachary? It was also for husband and wife to have a common topic. When Zachary talked about the stock market with others, Serenity could understand and understand the stock market situation, and when talking about projects, she could also say a few words, and even thought about investing in herself. If Serenity was still like before, sticking to a small bookstore and running an online store, even if she earned five figures a month but didn¡¯t move forward, when the passion between her and Zachary subsided, would the couple still be able to talk? The current Serenity seemed to be not worthy of Zachary, but she had been moving forward, enriching herself, trying to make herself stronger and stronger, catching up with Zachary¡¯s footsteps step by step. Mr. Lewis fell silent. Indeed, few people could do what the elders of the warlords did. When Mrs. York chose her daughter-inw, she seemed to want her son to fall in love freely. In fact, it was her husband¡¯s clever n to get her three sons to fall in love with the people she thought would make good daughter-inw candidates. ¡°I think Liberty is actually pretty good.¡± Mr. Lewis said. ¡°TThat¡¯s right, I don¡¯t care about it now; let them go; as long as Duncan lives well, even if he likes her, I will admit it.¡± Mrs. Lewis really didn¡¯t want to make trouble anymore. It depended on whether the two people had that fate. Mr. Lewis: ¡°I persuaded you back then¡ªdon¡¯t speak too harshly. Now you¡¯re pping yourself in the face.¡± Mrs. Lewis: ¡°¡­¡± Couldn¡¯t her husband say something nice?N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Chapter 1731 Chapter 1731 The residence of the Yorks. After Serenity called her sister, she helped Sonny measure the dumplings. After Sonny finished eating dumplings and taking his temperature, she said to Zachary: ¡°Thirty-seven degrees seven, why don¡¯t you give him a warm bath again?¡± Zachary poured Sonny a cup of warm water, asked Sonny to drink some warm water, and said, ¡°Sonny is full now let Sonny rest for a while, and then assist him in taking a warm bath. It will take time to reduce the fever, but the doctor has prescribed medication to be taken at home.¡± At this time, Zachary¡¯s cell phone rang. Serenity said: ¡°Sonny¡¯s fever is subsiding, so you should get busy at work while I watch Sonny at home.¡± Zachary did not answer the call; instead, he listened to Serenity¡¯s words before picking up the phone. The call was from Mr. Dawson. Zachary: ¡°Mr. Dawson.¡± Zachary disliked Analia, but remained courteous to Mr. Dawson. Ultimately, the two groups sought cooperation. Zachary would rather give up the fat that was almost in his mouth if Analia was too much. He was also unwilling to work with Dawsons. Mr. Dawson smiled heartily on the phone: ¡°Mr. York, let¡¯s have dinner together at noon. I¡¯ll treat you.¡± Before Zachary could speak, he said again: ¡°I¡¯ve reserved a private room for the two of us at your Wilspoon Hotel. The project we discussedst night can be discussed after dinner; there is no issue; the contract can be signed.¡± Analia boldly hooked Zachary¡¯s palmst night, and was criticized and educated by Mr. Dawson all night. Mr. Dawson still felt sorry for Zachary. Originally, he brought his daughter to discuss business with Zachary, which broke Zachary¡¯s rules. Zachary¡¯s magnanimity was indifferent to Mr. Dawson, Mr. Dawson believed that N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Zachary after marriage was significantly more magnanimous than before marriage, and Zachary had been transformed by love. But Mr. Dawson med himself for his daughter¡¯s hook. He was extremely devoted to his daughter, but he had limits. He would not permit his daughter to intervene in other people¡¯s marriages if he were killed. Therefore, Mr. Dawson decided to cooperate with York Corporation and no longer consider otherpanies, so he should use cooperation as an apology to Zachary. In the future, he would not take his daughter to step into the York Corporation, nor would he give his daughter the chance to see Zachary. Lest the daughter get deeper and deeper. Mr. Dawson was still very familiar with his daughter. Analiacked Elisa¡¯s courage, so she was able to afford to let it go. If Analia were caught in it, she would be aware that there was no oue, but she would still be drawn to it like moths to a me andmit suicide. ¡°I want to take my wife with me, can I?¡± Mr. Dawson didn¡¯t take his daughter with him anymore, but Zachary wanted to take Serenity with him. Serenity said at the side: ¡°Sonny¡¯s fever hasn¡¯tpletely subsided yet, I have to take care of Sonny at home. Husband, you can go by yourself.¡± Zachary looked at her. Serenity knew what he meant, she said trustingly: ¡°I haveplete faith in you, you do not require my protection, and you will not betray me.¡± It¡¯s time for Serenity to marry him. Serenity really believed that Zachary would not cheat. No matter how beautiful the women outside were, he was a person who liked house flowers. Zachary looked at Sonny again. Zachary eventually gave up on going out with his lovely wife because Sonny was too small and ufortable and it was really inconvenient to take him to meet clients. Mr. Dawson was also a heavy smoker and didn¡¯t want Sonny to smoke secondhand smoke. He responded to Mr. Dawson: ¡°Okay, see youter, Mr. Dawson remember, just the two of us.¡± Mr. Dawson said straightforwardly: ¡°Okay, see youter.¡± After Mr. Dawson hung up the phone, Zachary asked his beloved wife again: ¡°Seren, are you really not going with me? Are you not afraid that others will snatch your husband away?¡± ¡°It is useless to be afraid, even if you are afraid. If you are to be robbed, I will guard you day and night. They im that true love cannot be taken away. I believe that our love is genuine. No one can separate me from you.¡± Zachary touched Sonny¡¯s head, and said rather unpleasantly: ¡°You rejected me because of Sonny, you value other people¡¯s men more than me.¡± Serenity couldn¡¯tugh or cry. Serenity: ¡°It¡¯sing again, it¡¯sing again, I haven¡¯t been jealous for a long time, I miss the sour taste of vinegar, don¡¯t you?¡± Chapter 1732 Chapter 1732 Serenity: ¡°You go, can you rest assured Sonny?¡± Zachary fell silent. He was not at ease. Serenity: ¡°I will definitelye with you next time. Don¡¯t try to look serious. You need to go upstairs and change your clothes before you can leave. Don¡¯t keep Mr. Dawson waiting.¡± ¡°Come upstairs with me, help me pick a suit.¡± Zachary made a request. Serenity picked up Sonny and got up and left, ¡°Didn¡¯t I get you all of your clothes? They¡¯re all ck that you like, there¡¯s no difference between them, and you can wear any of them because they all look good on you. Your body looks like a hanger. No matter what you wear, you look great. Now the tie you wear every day is also bought by me, and you don¡¯t have to choose which one is the one I bought for you. Extra points for being personable.¡± Zachary muttered in a low voice: ¡°I want you to help me put it on.¡± Serenity turned her head to look at him, and said with a smile, ¡°Hurry up.¡± Zacharyughed. Taking a step forward and hugging Sonny out of Serenity¡¯s arms, ¡°I¡¯ll carry Sonny upstairs, don¡¯t tire you, Sonny is much heavier than when I first met him.¡± Serenity: ¡°At that time he was only two years old, now he is three years old, one year¡¯s time, the weight should not grow a little, my sister and I have to worry about him.¡± Zachary smiled lowly. How time flies. Sonny was three years old. A few minutester, the couple entered the room with Sonny, and Serenity went to help Zachary get a suit and tie. She thoughtfully helped Zachary put on his suit jacket. Sonny who was sitting on the side saw this scene, he made a shameful gesture towards Zachary, and said, ¡°Uncle is embarrassed and requests that my aunt help him dress.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­¡± When he didn¡¯t ask Serenity to help him get dressed when he was undressed, but simply asked his wife to assist him in putting on a coat, Sonny shamed him! Serenityughed at Zachary: ¡°Look, Sonny is ashamed by you because you want me to dress you when you are so old.¡± Zachary said to Sonny: ¡°Sonny is ashamed, and at such an age, your aunt needs to hug you.¡± ¡°I¡¯m still a child.¡± Sonny said confidently. Zachary smiled, ¡°Didn¡¯t Sonny usually say that you have grown up? When you grow up, you can¡¯t let your aunt hug you. Your aunt is my wife and can only hug me.¡± ¡°My aunt only hugs you! Why can¡¯t I?¡± Zachary: ¡°Your aunt is my wife.¡± ¡°Aunt is only mine!¡± Sonny emphasized unconvinced. ¡°Husband.¡± Serenity helped him put on his tie, and said with a smile: ¡°You are almost 30 years older than Sonny, and you stillpete with Sonny to win or lose. If you don¡¯t mind embarrassing me, I will embarrass you.¡± Zacharyughed: ¡°If you lose face for me, I don¡¯t feel ashamed anymore.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­¡± Zachary wanted topete Sonny, but Serenity soon pushed him out the door. ¡°Serenity, you don¡¯t care about me anymore. I want to go out. You are not as reluctant as others, and you even urged me to go out.¡± Zachary walked out of N?velDrama.Org content rights. the house,ining that Serenity didn¡¯t care enough for him. Sam who followed behind were all snickering. Chapter 1733 Chapter 1733 ¡°I don¡¯t care about you, I care about Sonny, who is not feeling well, otherwise I will apany you.¡± Serenity was funny talking about him. Before getting into the car, Zachary hugged Sonny, and said to Sonny: ¡°Sonny, Uncle really envies you. You can cling to your aunt every day. Unlike Uncle, there are many things waiting for Uncle to deal with every day.¡± ¡°Uncle, when I grow up and have the ability, I will help you with errands, and you can have a vacation.¡± Sonny¡¯s childish words made Zacharyugh. ¡°Sonny, you¡¯re such a good boy, it¡¯s not in vain that your uncle loves you so much.¡± Because of his happiness, Zachary took a sip of Sonny¡¯s little face, and said with a smile: ¡°Your uncle¡¯s work is difficult to handle, if Sonny wants to help uncle, you can study hard after school starts, and you will be able to help uncle when you grow up.¡± Sonny nodded vigorously, ¡°Uncle, I will study hard. Mom said that knowledge can change everything ¡­Anyway, I must study hard.¡± Sonny couldn¡¯t remember what his mother said for a while, but he could give a general idea. ¡°Yes, you have to listen to your mother and aunt.¡± Zachary put down Sonny, looked at his beloved wife, and really wanted to hug his wife and have a good time, but because of the presence of Sonny, he had to give up. Zachary: ¡°Serenity, I¡¯m going to see Mr. Dawson.¡± Serenity: ¡°Go.¡± After Serenity finished speaking, she thought for a while and added another sentence: ¡°I will miss you. When Sonny¡¯s fever subsidespletely, I will take him out to rx in the afternoon, and then go to thepany to find you.¡± Only then did Zachary go out satisfied. Serenity stood at the entrance of the vi with Sonny, watching Zachary¡¯s Rolls Royce go away surrounded by several bodyguard cars, and then she led Sonny back. ¡°Auntie, I want to go out to y.¡± Sonny asked while walking. Serenity: ¡°Sonny, your fever hasn¡¯t gone away all the way yet. Why don¡¯t you go y outside when you¡¯re done?¡± Sonny pouted, looking unhappy. He wouldn¡¯t cry or even roll all over the floor like other kids do when adults can¡¯t meet their needs. He would just make a sad face and let adults see how sad he was. This could go on for a long time. Serenity pinched his mouth lightly, and jokingly said: ¡°It¡¯s so high that you can hang two catties of pork. Auntie will take you around here.¡± Sonny became happy now. The aunt and nephew didn¡¯t enter the house, but turned around and walked out. Seeing this, Sam immediately arranged for two bodyguards to follow the nephew and aunt not too far away. Even though the security level here was very high, the eldest and young mistress could also fight with fists, and Sam dared not be careless. The aunt and nephew wandered outside for a long time, until Sonny said that he was tired and wanted to go home. Serenity led him home and touched his forehead, probably because he was sweating from walking and felt his body temperature drop. ¡°Auntie, give me a hug.¡± Sonny was about to hug. Serenity picked him up and said: ¡°Auntie can¡¯t hold Sonny for too long, she will walk on the ground soon.¡± N?velDrama.Org content rights. Sonny put his arms around her neck and said nothing. It meant that he wanted his aunt to carry him back home. If his uncle Zachary was there, he could carry Sonny back home. Serenity hugged Sonny for a while, and was about to let him go to the ground, but the little guy was really tired from walking and refused to go to the ground. The following bodyguards rushed forward, and they carried Sonny home. Back in the vi, as soon as Sonny entered the door, Sam, the butler walked over with arge bouquet of flowers. He still had a few bags hanging on his hands, which looked like bags for clothes. Chapter 1734 Chapter 1734 Sam, who sent these flowers? Did your young master send them back?¡± Serenity thought that the bouquet of flowers was given to her by someone sent by Zachary. ¡°What did Zachary give me again? I can¡¯t wear enough clothes.¡± Serenity also thought that those bags containing clothes were also given to her by Zachary. Serenity was responsible of buying or making his clothes, and Zachary was in charge of hers. He bought her all the clothes he liked. Sam hesitated to speak. He handed the bouquet to Serenity first, Serenity took it, and saw a small card inside. She picked up the small card to read, it said: ¡°Zachary, this bouquet is for you, I hope you will be happy every day. Be happy, love you!¡± There was no signature. A bouquet for Zachary? Serenity was a little dazed after reading it. This was a bouquet of roses. Someone gave Zachary a bouquet of roses. There was also words of love for Zachary written on the card. She didn¡¯t need to ask to know that it was given by a woman. Who sent flowers to her man? Sam handed the bags to Serenity again, and said, ¡°Young Mistress, there are these sets of clothes and ties. There are cards in the bags, and they all say that.¡± Before Zachary came in, he had also received these, and they were all given by Ms. Elisa. Elisa always gave gifts aboveboard, and would not dare to sign like this person, so she hired a courier to deliver them. The courier only said that a man paid a lot of money to ask him to deliver it. The man said that he delivered it for a customer. The man didn¡¯t say who the customer was, and the courier didn¡¯t even know. It¡¯s too mysterious, even Sam can¡¯t figure it out. Serenity turned around and walked to the sofa with the bouquet in her arms, put the bouquet on the coffee table, and then motioned for Sam to give her some bags. She took out the clothes and ties in the bags and took a look. They were all famous brands, and the suits were also ck. Zachary used to wear ck or dark blue suits. That person had figured out Zachary¡¯s preferences, so he didn¡¯t give him a suit of other colors. ¡°Did you tell your young master?¡± Serenity asked Sam. Sam was the butler, and he had won the trust of Zachary. If there was anything, Sam would notify Zachary immediately. Sam shook his head and said: ¡°These things were delivered not long ago. When I was hesitating whether to tell the young master, you came back.¡± Sam considered letting Serenity handle it. Zachary said that Serenity had the final say on family matters. Looking at Serenity¡¯s expression, she didn¡¯t seem angry. Serenity must know it in her heart. When she thinks of Zachary¡¯s handsome face, which could make many people interested, and the fact that there were still suitors after they were married, she must know it. Serenity also put the clothes and tie on the coffee table, then picked up Sonny, let Sonny sit on the sofa, and said softly: ¡°Sonny, I will go and get the thermometer to measure your temperature for you.¡± Then she said to Sam: ¡°Sam, help Sonny pour a ss of warm water for him to drink, I¡¯ll take his temperature to see if his fever haspletely subsided.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Sam turned around and poured a ss of warm water for Sonny. N?velDrama.Org content. Serenity brought a thermometer, and after Sonny drank half a cup of warm water, she hugged Sonny and helped Sonny take his temperature. Sam didn¡¯t leave, he waited for Serenity to deal with the bouquet of flowers and clothes. A few minutester, Serenity took out the thermometer, looked at it, breathed a sigh of relief, and said to Sam: ¡°Thirty-six degrees nine, the fever haspletely subsided.¡± Sonny was sweating just now, and she guessed that he had retreated. Chapter 1735 Chapter 1735 After Sonny was fine, Serenity took out her mobile phone, took photos of flowers and clothes, and sent them to Zachary. Zachary called her soon. ¡°Wife, who gave you the bouquet? Zachary asked aggressively, who dared to send flowers to his wife? Serenity: ¡°Didn¡¯t you see that those clothes are suits? There are also ties, which are for you, and the bouquet of flowers is also for you.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­for me?¡± All of a sudden, his aggressive aura went away. N?velDrama.Org content rights. It was actually given to him! That idiot, ying pranks, sending him flowers and clothes, trying to make him have conflicts with Serenity, right? He quickly exined: ¡°Honey, I definitely didn¡¯t provoke anyone outside, and I never did anything wrong to you. Does it say who gave it to you on the card? I¡¯ll ask her to settle the score!¡± ¡°The person didn¡¯t write the signature, I don¡¯t know who sent it.¡± Serenity guessed it should be Ms. Dawson. Last night, Zachary told her that Ms. Dawson fell in love with him and hooked his palm. Today, someone sent flowers and clothes to Zachary. Except for Ms. Dawson, Serenity couldn¡¯t think of anyone else. In Wiltspoon, who didn¡¯t know that Zachary was married? Who didn¡¯t know that Zachary loved his wife? Even if there were still people who weren¡¯t happy with Zachary and secretly admired him, no one was brave enough to openly pursue Zachary because that would be a bad idea. In Wiltspoon, among the daughters of famous families, how many people have a statusparable to Elisa¡¯s? When Elisa pursued Zachary, how did Zachary treat Elisa? So in Wiltspoon, no one would be so stupid as to fight Serenity, they couldn¡¯t compete. ¡°Which one is so full that he treats me like this? Wife, don¡¯t get me wrong, I really didn¡¯t flirt outside.¡± Zachary was most afraid that Serenity would misunderstand him, so he exined repeatedly. Serenity: ¡°I believe you didn¡¯t mess around, I just sent it to you to see what you mean. Do you want to ept these things?¡± Zachary: ¡°Throw them all into the trash can, I except the clothes you gave me, I don¡¯t wear what others give me!¡± Without thinking about it, Zachary asked Serenity to throw the bouquet and those suits into the trash can. ¡°They¡¯re all branded goods, and they¡¯re quite valuable.¡± Serenity said intentionally, ¡°It¡¯s a pity to throw them away. It¡¯s someone else¡¯s intention anyway. Maybe they will send them over tomorrow.¡± Zachary: ¡± ¡­Serenity, don¡¯tugh at me right now. I really don¡¯t like the clothes other people give me. I told Sam not to ept anything that will be given to me in the future before the timees. I can¡¯t take all of it, so throw it out! I mean throw it away, and she didn¡¯t know you threw it away, so she thought you epted it, and gave it to you every day, You¡¯d better return the things to her and let her know that you won¡¯t be moved by her gifts, let alone ept her gifts. It will p her in the face, which will make her give up and stop giving us gifts.¡± Zachary felt that his wife was right, but he didn¡¯t know who gave it to him. He had always kept himself clean and clean before marriage, and he had never been ambiguous with other women after marriage. ¡°How is your chat with Mr. Dawson going?¡± Serenity didn¡¯t express her suspicion directly, but suddenly changed the question, and Zachary thought of Analia. Zachary and Mr. Dawson were already having dinner at the hotel, and they had a good chat. Serenity sent him a photo, and he hurried out of the private room to make a phone call. Now he was talking with Mr. Dawson. Mr. Dawson did what he said, and he was the only one who went to the appointment, not bringing that annoying Analia with him. Chapter 1736 Chapter 1736 It must be Analia! Zachary¡¯s face was gloomy, Analia didn¡¯t follow, but she didn¡¯t give up, and actually sent flowers and clothes to his residence. Mr. Dawson invited Zachary to dinner today and decided to cooperate. It was impossible for Analia not to know. She chose to send flowers and clothes over after he left the house. It was intentional, to make Serenity misunderstand him and make trouble with him. That woman, Analia was too insidious. ¡°I had a good chat with Mr. Dawson, and the cooperation was finalized. Now that I think about it. Serenity, I have given up on this project.¡± Mr. Dawson only had one daughter, Analia. It was said that Mr. Dawson had a physical problem. It took a long time to give birth to this daughter, and the couple loved their daughter very much. Although Mr. Dawson was reasonable, if he didn¡¯t bring Analia here today, he would not support Analia in pursuing Zachary, but Zachary didn¡¯t want to gamble. N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Parents who doted on their children, no matter how sensible they were, would eventually give in,promise, and stand on the side of their children. If he cooperated with Dawson¡¯s, it would be convenient for Analia to enter and exit York Corporation. ¡°Husband, this is a big business. Once it¡¯s settled, what are you afraid of in cooperating? You can¡¯t p her. As long as you don¡¯t have any interest in her, what she does will be futile.¡± Serenity still believes in Zachary. Of course, Serenity was very upset when a woman stared at her husband. But she didn¡¯t want to affect the cooperation between the two groups because of personal feelings. Business to business, private to private. ¡°Husband, if you¡¯re worried that Mr. Dawson will help his daughter in the future, you can add a few uses to the contract that say Dawson Group will pay for all losses if the cooperation ends because of personal feelings. Husband, I believe you 100 percent. That woman can¡¯t take my husband away, no matter how strong she is. You guys finish this project first, and then you can make money. It¡¯s not a long-term partnership.¡± This project with Dawson Group¡¯s could make Zachary personally came forward to talk about it, which showed that the profits brought to the York Corporation were great. As the wife of the president of the York Corporation, Serenity certainly hoped that the York Corporation could make money. Serenity felt it was a pity to let go of a good opportunity to make money. Zachary didn¡¯t speak. After a while, he asked, ¡°Has Sonny¡¯s fever gone?¡± ¡°The fever haspletely gone. I took him out to y for a while just now, and he was sweating all over. When I came back, I took his temperature, it was thirtysix degrees nine.¡± Zachary: ¡°It¡¯s fine. Serenity bring the bouquet and those clothes to the hotel. I¡¯ll give those things to Mr. Dawson and ask him to take them back and return them to Ms. Dawson.¡± Except for Analia, Zachary didn¡¯t expect it to be who gave it to him. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to investigate first? Have someone investigate to make sure it was sent by Ms. Dawson, and then ask Mr. Dawson to take it back. What if there are other admirers besides Ms. Dawson?¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­ ..I really didn¡¯t attract the bees and attract the butterflies.¡± ¡°I know you didn¡¯t attract the bees and the butterflies, it was because they smelled your scent.¡± Zachary¡¯s face turned dark. Zachary: ¡°I¡¯ll ask Josh to check it out for me. You first bring the garbage over and put it in the bodyguard car. Don¡¯t touch it, so as not to dirty your hands. Wait until Josh gives me an answer, and then ask Mr. Dawson to take the things back.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Serenity agreed to him, and would help him send those things to Wiltspoon Hotelter. Chapter 1737 Chapter 1737 ¡°Husband, Since you are so good, it would be strange if no one liked you. In addition, the more people who like you, the more it proves my luck. So, really, I¡¯m not angry at all. I am aware of how much incense must still be burned before I can marry you in this life.¡± Serenity was really not angry. Serenity had to mentally prepare herself for the possibility that she might asionally experience a rival in love after marrying such a wonderful husband. After all, not every girl had the same level of maturity as her cousin Elisa, who had the means to forgive. After Serenity repeatedly assured that she would not be angry, Zachary was relieved. After the couple finished talking, Zachary immediately called Josh and asked him to check for him. Joshined: ¡°Zachary, can¡¯t you let me apany my wife well? My wife is N?velDrama.Org content rights. just pregnant, and my vacation is not over yet.¡± Afterining, he said straightforwardly: ¡°I¡¯ll help you right away. You check it out, and then share it with my wife, so that she will always be at the forefront of eating melons.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­¡± His response was to hang up the phone directly. Such small things were easy for Josh to eat. When Serenity took Sonny out together, on the way to Wiltspoon Hotel, Zachary received a reply from Josh, and some evidence that Josh sent to his mobile phone, which proved that the bouquet and clothes were sent by Analia. Zachary didn¡¯t tell Mr. Dawson right away. When Serenity arrived at the hotel, Zachary said to Mr. Dawson: ¡°Mr. Dawson, my wife is here. I¡¯ll go downstairs to pick her up.¡± Then he said to Kevin: ¡°Kevin, you should stay here and talk to Mr. Dawson.¡± Mr. Dawson said with a smile: ¡°Mr. York, please do what you want.¡± After Zachary got up and left, Mr. Dawson said to Kevin: ¡°It can be seen that Mr. York really loves his wife.¡± Kevinughed and said, ¡°My elder brother is the most famous in Wiltspoon for doting on his wife. He won¡¯t change his mind for the rest of his life.¡± Mr. Dawson sighed, ¡°I¡¯m afraid no one can take the ce of the eldest mistress.¡± His daughter fell in love with Zachary at first sight, and it was destined to be fruitless. Thinking of his repeated persuasion, his daughter didn¡¯t seem to listen, and felt that Serenity was not worthy of Zachary, only she was worthy, and Mr. Dawson was very worried. Although Dawson group and York Corporation had never met each other before, Mr. Dawson had heard a lot of rumors about Zachary, and his daughter, Analia had also heard a lot. Before meeting Zachary, Analia had no interest in Zachary. Mr. Dawson had always taken his daughter by his side to study, and taught many things hand in hand. After all, his daughter would eventually receive the Dawson Group as an inheritance. It would be wonderful if he could be a sessor who would safeguard the nation because he had no expectation that his daughter would continue the Dawson Family Chapter 1738 Chapter 1738 Now he¡¯s rxed a bit, probably thinking that he¡¯s married, but¡­ he couldn¡¯t help but sigh. Kevin didn¡¯t know that Analia fell in love with his elder brother. He heard Mr. Dawson¡¯s words and said with a smile: ¡°Men in our York family are all like this, it¡¯s a family inheritance. Once the true feelings are touched, they will never change their minds for the rest of their lives. It takes a lot of luck to find true love in this world, and it is also the blessing and fate cultivated in the previous life, so we will cherish it all the more. My elder brother loves my sister-inw very much, and they have also experienced some storms. Today, the rtionship has be more stable, they cherish each other very much, and they have given us little ones a good start.¡± Kevin did not look forward to his own love, but envied the love of his brother and sister-inw, and he and Hayden had no progress. To be honest, he and Hayden only met a few times, which was the result of grandma¡¯s help. He admitted that Hayden was very good, and the two of them could chat well. In fact, he could chat with anyone very well. N?velDrama.Org content rights. But each time Kevin saw Hayden¡¯s man in costume, he was unable to identify her as a woman, much less fall in love with her. He had a constant sense of being with Hayden, as though two were madly in love. Although, Kevin also wanted to expose Hayden¡¯s identity as a woman. Grandma had set a one-year deadline, and half a year had passed with neither Kevin nor Hayden making any progress. He pursued Hayden because he was embarrassed and worried that people would think he was gay. Hayden also attracted a lot of female suitors. As soon as Kevin thought that his rival in love was half a beautiful woman, he retracted his outstretched foot. At the very least, he should wait until the second half of the year to try again. Grandma won¡¯t let him go home, so if he didn¡¯t catch up with Hayden within a year, he wouldn¡¯t return. He could, however, live in any of the many homes that were registered in his name. ¡°When will Mr. York and his wife hold a wedding? Will they have a wedding? They have obtained the certificate for so long, will they not hold a wedding?¡± Mr. Dawson appeared to be chatting about gossip, but in reality, he was trying to find out how to hit her own daughter; if she does, she¡¯ll get hurt all over. ¡°The wedding date has already been set, but the wedding date is after autumn. Before the wedding date approaches, we will send invitations to everyone. My elder brother loves my sister-inw so much, how could he not hold a wedding? No one can wrong my sister-inw.¡± Zachary, As for the eldest son, the major events in his life were the most important things in the eyes of the elders. The wedding must be held, and it must be a sensation in Wiltspoon. Mr. Dawson let out a sigh, and said with a smile: ¡°That¡¯s right, Mr. York can¡¯t wrong his wife.¡± The two chatted for a while, and after the door was pushed open again, Mr. Dawson saw Zachary holding a child and carrying a child with him. The young woman walked in, followed by two bodyguards. One bodyguard was holding a large bouquet of bright and eye-catching roses, and the other was carrying several exquisite bags. Mr. Dawson didn¡¯t know what was in the bags. Seeing this scene, Mr. Dawson thought to himself: ¡®Zachary has already bought a bouquet of flowers and other gifts for his wife for just a cup of tea.¡¯ This young couple, the rtionship was really good. Zachary really doted on his wife. If his wife left a message while Zachary was speaking with a client about business, he could end the conversation and go downstairs to pick up his wife. This was Wiltspoon Hotel, and Zachary brought bodyguards with him. He could ask the bodyguards to go downstairs to pick up Serenity, and he could also let the people from the hotel send Serenity upstairs. He didn¡¯t have to pick her up in person, but he did. It showed that the rtionship between the young couple was very good, and outsiders couldn¡¯t get involved. Chapter 1739 Chapter 1739 It could be seen that Zachary really loved the little guy, which was the expression of love. At the moment when Zachary brought Serenity in, Mr. Dawson had already thought a lot. ¡°Serenity, this is Mr. Dawson, Mr. Dawson, this is my wife, Serenity.¡± Zachary took Serenity to the table and introduced her and Mr. Dawson. Mr. Dawson withdrew his thoughts, stood up, smiled and shook hands with Serenity. After that, he looked at the flowers and bags that the two bodyguards were holding. As the distance got closer, Mr. Dawson could clearly see the logos on the outside of those bags. They were bags for a certain men¡¯s brand. Mr. Dawson thought to himself: ¡®it must be the new clothes Serenity bought for Zachary and Zachary was here to show off¡¯. ¡°Sister-inw.¡± After Serenity and Mr. Dawson shook hands, Kevin called Serenity, and he also got up, stretched out his hand, hugged Sonny from the elder brother¡¯s hand, and said with a smile: ¡°Sonny, it¡¯s been a while since I¡¯ve seen you. Do you miss Uncle Kevin, Sonny?¡± ¡°No.¡± Sonny said the truth. He had very little contact with Kevin, and he didn¡¯t have any feelings for him. He really wouldn¡¯t think about an uncle who had no feelings for him and was like a stranger. Even uncle¡¯s cousin. Kevin: ¡°¡­Sonny doesn¡¯t want uncle Kevin, but uncle Kevin misses you.¡± Sonny looked at Kevin who was holding him, and said seriously: ¡°Uncle Kevin doesn¡¯t want Sonny either.¡± Kevin: ¡°Uncle Kevin thinks about it.¡± Sonny: ¡°If Uncle Kevin wanted Sonny, why would he never go to Sonny and take Sonny out to y?¡± Kevin was left speechless by Sonny¡¯s question. Everyone wasughing. Mr. Dawson praised: ¡°Young Mistress, your nephew is really smart.¡± Serenity said modestly: ¡°Mr. Dawson is over the top. Sonny is honest and only speaks the truth.¡± Everyone wasughing again. Afterughing, Zachary signaled the two bodyguards to put the bouquet and clothes on the empty chair next to Mr. Dawson. Mr. Dawson looked at Zachary without knowing why, but he had a bad premonition in his heart. ¡°Mr. Dawson.¡± Zachary said in a low voice. Kevin looked at his elder brother without knowing why, and when he saw his elder brother speak, he pricked up his ears, for fear that he would miss it. What was going on? The bouquet and clothes that sister-inw gave to elder brother, but elder brother asked the bodyguards to put them next to Mr. Dawson? ¡°Mr. Dawson, let me show you some pictures. I asked Josh to check them for me, and he sent them to me.¡± Zachary took out his mobile phone, clicked on WhatsApp, and showed the photos Josh sent him to Mr. Dawson. After Mr. Dawson saw the photos, his expression was really indescribable. ¡°Mr. Dawson, You know I am married and I love my wife very much. In this life, there will only be one woman, my wife. I can¡¯t amodate other women in my N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. heart, and I have given up all my tenderness. I have a big family, and I can no longer share a single bit of it with other people. Analia asked someone to give me these gifts, and please do me a favor, Mr. Dawson, to help me return these things to Analia.¡± The project that our twopanies coborated on and¡­ Chapter 1740 Chapter 1740 ¡°What Analia did, I will deal with it seriously after I go back, I promise, during the period of cooperation between our twopanies, we will not let Analia appear in front of you again, and we will keep an eye on her, and try our best not to let her disturb and pester you.¡± Although he couldn¡¯t guarantee that he would be able topletely stop his daughter, as long as he knew, he would do so. Mr. Dawson raised his daughter with a lot of love and care, and she was also well-bred. Analia was a child that Mr. and Mrs. Dawson were pleased with, but Mr. Dawson didn¡¯t want her daughter¡¯s love of a married man to ruin the rest of her life. Zachary said in a deep voice: ¡°I believe in Mr. Dawson. I will hand over the project to other people to follow up. I hope Mr. Dawson can do what he says and don¡¯t let Ms. Dawson bother me and pester me. Ms. Dawson is a very good girl, she can find a better man.¡± . The cooperation with Dawson¡¯s was only one project. In the future, it was estimated that they would not cooperate again. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Zachary was also persuaded by Serenity, so he reluctantly retained the cooperative rtionship. However, for this project, he would no longer follow it personally, and would leave it to others to follow up. In the future, he would greatly reduce the chances of meeting Mr. Dawson. ¡°I will, I will.¡± Mr. Dawson said repeatedly. After something like this happened, Mr. Dawson couldn¡¯t sit still. He said to Zachary apologetically: ¡°Mr. York, I¡¯m really sorry for troubling you. I¡¯m sorry to bother you and your wife. Mr. York, I have something to do, so I¡¯m leaving first.¡± Mr. Dawson got up to say goodbye, not forgetting to pick up the bouquet of flowers and those bags. Kevin was a little dumbfounded. He thought it was brother and sister-inw showing affection, but it turned out that they had eaten a melon. Mr. Dawson¡¯s daughter started to act after seeing his elder brother. This mobility was fine! Faster than Elisa back then, she was a solid mover. However, her character was not as good as Elisa¡¯s. When Elisa liked his elder brother, his elder brother was still single. Even after having a sister-inw, it is understandable that Elisa didn¡¯t know about his elder brother¡¯s secret marriage at that time. Severing love with a sword? The crispness and neatness made them all look at Elisa a few times. It had been several years since Elisa admired his elder brother. This Ms. Dawson knew that his elder brother was married, but after meeting his elder brother, she began to pursue him, sending flowers and clothes¡­ The sister-inw did not misunderstand, did she? Kevin carefully aimed at Serenity. Serenity noticed that Kevin was looking at her, and she said with a smile: ¡°Kevin, I didn¡¯t misunderstand your elder brother, don¡¯t worry.¡± Kevin heaved a sigh of relief, ¡°Sister-inw is wise, it is impossible for my elder brother to betray you, don¡¯t fall for it. They have ruined other people¡¯s ns.¡± The rtionship between his elder brother and sister-inw was good, and their life was also easy. If brothers and sisters-inw have conflicts, quarrels, and cold wars, their lives would not be easy. Of course, Kevin still cared about his elder brother and sister-inw very much, and it was definitely not just for his own life. ¡°I also trust your elder brother.¡± Serenity looked at the man beside him with a smile, and Zachary held her hand. Zachary: ¡°Honey, I didn¡¯t suspend the cooperation with Mr. Dawson, so don¡¯t be under psychological pressure.¡± Kevin ndered in his heart: it turned out that the sister-inw persuaded the elder brother. Otherwise, given the elder brother¡¯s personality, it would be impossible to work with Mr. Dawson once more, even if the project had the potential to bring York Corporation significant financial gain. The only person who could eat and live with his elder brother was his elder sister-inw. Chapter 1741 Chapter 1741 Chapter 1741 Zachary was dissatisfied. Serenity reminded him in a low voice: ¡°Kevin and Sonny are both here.¡± Zachary looked at his younger brother and nephew. Kevin gave Sonny something to eat, and Sonny was struggling with the dishes in the bowl with his chopsticks, not paying attention to the affairs between the adults. ¡°Sonny, can you catch it? How about, uncle Kevin feed you?¡± Kevin asked Sonny beside him nonchntly, not looking at his brother and sister-iw opposite. He knew that he had be a light bulb. The eldest brotherined that he was a light bulb, and he alsoined that the eldest brother always sprinkled dog food to stimte him. ¡°Uncle Kevin, I¡¯ll do it myself.¡± Sonny refused Kevin to feed him. Serenity filled a bowl of soup for Sonny and put it in front of him, ¡°Sonny, have a bowl of soup.¡± Sonny: ¡°Thank you, auntie.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°If you want to eat, ask your uncle Kevin for help.¡± Afterwards, Serenity looked at Zachary beside her and asked, ¡°Husband, you haven¡¯t eaten yet.¡± When Serenity arrived, the food on the table had been barely touched. ¡°No, we all only drank a bowl of soup.¡± Zachary picked up vegetables for Serenity. Serenity knew this was the case. After eating and drinking, Zachary did not stay in the hotel to rest, but went back to the company directly. Now that Sonny¡¯s fever had subsided, Serenity brought Sonny and Zachary back to thepany for a look. ¡­.. N?velDrama.Org content rights. Mr. Dawson returned to his vi, and when he entered the door, he asked the maid: ¡°Where is Analia?¡± The maid replied: ¡°Miss is swimming in the swimming pool.¡± After sitting on the sofa, Mr. Dawson turned around and went to the indoor swimming pool. Analia swam around like a fish in the swimming pool, and when she saw her father coming, she swam to the edge of the pool. ¡°Dad, you¡¯re back so soon?¡± Analia asked with a smile, ¡°How¡¯s the project going?¡± If the two groups cooperated, she would have a legitimate reason to enter and exit the York Corporation openly. As long as there were more chances to get in touch with Analia, Zachary would understand that only a woman like her was suitable for him and a perfect match for him. Analia could exit the hallway and enter the kitchen, catch inside and outside, and assist Zachary, unlike Serenity, who was unable to assist Zachary. What did Serenity do in addition to warming Zachary¡¯s bed? A bed warmer that won¡¯t eveny an egg! Serenity had not been pregnant thus far, and this fact had be a potent weapon for her enemies. Mr. Dawson: ¡°Analia, get up, Dad has something to show you.¡± Chapter 1742 Chapter 1742 Chapter 1742 Analia caught the towel, looked at his father who turned and left, and guessed that something happened. Maybe Zachary canceled the cooperation n because Analia hooked his palm? Their project with Dawsons could bring in a lot of money for the twopanies. It was a project that was good for everyone, so manypanies wanted to work with them. Zachary was in business, and businesspeople wanted to make money. Was he ready to give up? Analia got up from the swimming pool, entered the locker room, changed her clothes, and then left. Back in the hall, she saw her father sitting on the sofa with suppressed anger on his face. In front of her father, there was a bouquet of flowers and several bags. ¡°Dad, who gave this to you? Or did you buy it for me?¡± Analia walked over and asked, ¡°If someone else gave it to Dad, I will tell my mother.¡± Analia followed with her father, It was done to get ready to take over the business and to help the mother keep an eye on the father and stop him from incurring outside romantic debts. Her mother was worried that her father wanted a son and would have a son with someone else outside. The mother was too old to have another child, and felt sorry for her father because she was the only one born. Despite the fact that her father had health issues, the mother imed that the father had been recovering for a long time and that she was too old to have another child. Who knew if her mother and the father would be parents together? Mrs. Dawson could only have one child, Analia, and she was still a daughter. She was afraid that her husband would listen to other people¡¯s persuasion to have a son outside and trained him to take over the Dawson Group. ¡°You have no impression of this bouquet of flowers? You also have no impression of these clothes?¡± Mr. Dawson picked up the bouquet of flowers and threw it at Analia. Analia instinctively caught the bouquet of flowers. Thinking of what she had done today, Analia¡¯splexion changed, and she quickly returned to normal. She said openly, ¡°Dad, do you know? This bouquet of flowers looks familiar. I sent someone to the vi on the top of the mountain for Zachary¡¯s, right?¡± Analia took the bags and looked at them, ¡°I also bought these clothes and ties, and I sent them to Zachary¡¯s residence because of my heart for him. Why are these things here, Dad?¡± Mr. Dawson was so angry at his daughter¡¯s words that his face turned livid. He stood up abruptly, and wanted to p her, but he raised his hand high and couldn¡¯t p her. He never lifted a finger of his daughter. For his daughter, Mr. Dawson had seen so many doctors, took so many medicines, and painstakingly recuperated his body. The daughter was very simr to him, and he really regarded her as his sweetheart. Mr. Dawson finally put down his hand. It was like this, which also frightened Analia. She thought that her father was really going to beat her to death. Mr. Dawson didn¡¯t p Analia across the face, but couldn¡¯t help poking her forehead with his finger, and said angrily and helplessly: ¡°You turned a deaf ear to what Dad said, didn¡¯t you? Zachary is married, he is a man with a wife, and he adores and spoils his wife. You don¡¯t want to miss him because that would be self-inflicted humiliation. You ignore me and send him flowers, clothes, and ties. I¡¯m your father; why didn¡¯t I notice you buying new clothes and ties for your father? And do you think that if you send it to Mr. York¡¯s house, his wife will misunderstand and quarrel with him? How can the couple trust each other so easily fall for it?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Mr. Dawson continued to scold his daughter, ¡°You should also be thankful that his wife trusted Mr. York and didn¡¯t misinterpret him; otherwise, would you be able to bear the consequences if Mr. York was enraged? Do you believe that because our Dawson family isn¡¯t in Wiltspoon, we don¡¯t have to worry about Mr. York¡¯s revenge?¡± Analia said: ¡°Zachary likes Serenity, right? What else would she do? Zachary is cool, and I want to be with him. he¡¯s married¡ªso what? I¡¯ll pursue someone I like. I¡¯m 100x better than Serenity. I can defeat Serenity if Zachary understands and gives me a chance.¡± Mr. Dawson was so angry that he raised his hand again to p her across the face. ¡°You don¡¯t decide whether Miss Serenity is deserving or not. The York family has never objected and has always believed she is deserving.¡± Chapter 1743 Chapter 1743 Chapter 1743 Analia: ¡°¡­¡± Mr. Dawson: ¡°Zachary will not give you a chance, regardless of whether he is married or not. If he is not married, it would be simple to catch him, but it is not your turn. The daughter of the Stone family at the time was deeply enamored of him, and Ms. Stone is no worse than you.¡± Analia curled her lips and muttered softly: ¡°Ms. Stone is not as good as I am; she is erratic and brutal. Her reputation at Wiltspoon isn¡¯t great, except for the fact that her background is simr to mine and she¡¯s not as good as me in other ways.¡± Mr. Dawson: ¡°¡­¡± He took a deep breath, then another, telling himself that his daughter is his! After a long while, he sat down weakly, stared at his daughter for a long time, and said, ¡°Dad insisted on working on the project with Mr. York. If Mr. York does not keep his word, we must give York Corporation an additional 10% of the profit. That¡¯s a concession you don¡¯t want to give up on. However, this is Dawson Group¡¯s first and final coboration with York Corporation. You can¡¯t follow me in and out of York Corporation while the twopanies are working together. I also promised Mr. York that you would never appear in front of him and that I would not allow you to harass or pester him. Analia, dad said the worst things first: if you don¡¯t listen to dad and go to harass Zachary in private and keep pestering him, Dad will give all the shares of the Dawson family to your cousins, who are also the flesh and blood of my Dawson family. You don¡¯t own any Dawson¡¯s shares. Anyway, I won¡¯t let you inherit my property. Despite the fact that I only have you as a child, my property does not have to be given to you. I can donate it all or give it to your cousins, cousins, who are all blood rtives of mine.¡± Analia¡¯s face turned dark. She didn¡¯t expect her father to even say such words in order to prevent her from pursuing Zachary. She would be worse off than Serenity if she couldn¡¯t inherit her father¡¯s shares in Dawson¡¯s and her father¡¯s property. What was her advantage? Having worked with his father for so many years, Analia was also reluctant, let alone reconciled, that his father¡¯s nearly 10 billion property was divided among his cousins. Those people usually ttered her father, especially her cousins. They wanted to change his father¡¯s decision and let them take over the Dawson Group. In thepany, her cousins also had a lot of followers, and their abilities werre not inferior to hers. Her advantage was the biological daughter of her parents. ¡°Analia, you, too, believe you are excellent. Why bother getting involved in other people¡¯s marriages when we¡¯re so good? You have the right to freely like someone, but do not like other people¡¯s husbands. You¡¯re not looking for true love; you¡¯re looking for a mistress. Your parents worked hard to prepare you to be a mistress. ¡°Regardless of your motivation for interfering in other people¡¯s marriages, you are still a mistress!¡± You are notorious for having been a mistress once, and this stain will follow you for the rest of your life and when others mention you in the future, they¡¯ll call you a mistress, a s-l-u-t, a v!xen, and a shmeless bstard, Analia. Would you like to hear such swearing, Analia?¡± Analia¡¯s expression was ugly. ¡°There are so many good men in the world. Let¡¯s not Zachary, we can definitely find better ones. Look at Ms. Stone. After she put down Zachary, she is now getting close to the fifth young master of Johnson¡¯s family in Annenburg. The two of them will be a happy couple sooner orter. Why hang on a tree? That tree is not yours yet, if you want to hang there, the owner of the tree thinks you dirty his ce.¡± Analia remained silent. Mr. Dawson persuaded his daughter earnestly for a while, and seeing that her daughter had listened, he said, ¡°Consider this: Dad is now asking someone to purchase a ne ticket. Or return by ne at night; on the way back, I have already informed your big brother toe over, and I will delegate responsibility for cooperation to your big brother.¡±N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. Chapter 1744 Chapter 1744 Chapter 1744 Was the first time she had feelings for a man doomed from the start? She was very unwilling! Why did Serenity get such an excellent man as Zachary? ¡­ York Corporation, President¡¯s Office. In the lounge, after Serenity helped her sleeping nephew cover the air-conditioning quilt, he asked Zachary: ¡°When he returns, will Mr. Dawson be able to care for his daughter? His daughter is still young, so he ought to spoil her a lot.¡± Zachary immediately passed by Sonny squeezed beside her, put one hand under her head as a pillow, and lightly pinched Serenity¡¯s face with the other. Zachary: ¡°Serenity, are you jealous?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds text ? rights. She rarely felt jealousy. Since receiving the certificate, it must be stated that she has never been jealous. She had heard a lot about the girls who liked Zachary, and she had also heard it from Josh. However, Josh said that Elisa was the only girl who had the courage to publicly confess her feelings for Zachary and pursue him. Knowing that Zachary and Serenity were husband and wife, they immediately broke up with each other with a sword. Therefore, Serenity had never been jealous, she just felt sorry for Elisa, and felt that she stole Elisa¡¯s sweetheart without knowing it. Fortunately, now that Elisa had Remy, the apology hidden in Serenity¡¯s heart could be resolved. But Zachary was often jealous, and he also wanted Serenity to be jealous for him. Serenity said, ¡°I¡¯m not jealous, but my husband is being targeted by other women, and I¡¯m still very upset.¡± Serenity slipped into his arms, put one hand on his waist, and said domineeringly: ¡°Husband, you are mine! You said, I am yours, and you are mine!¡± Zachary said dotingly: ¡°Yes, yes, I am yours, and I will always be yours! I will only yours!¡± Serenity words were not too sour, but she said that she was upset, and somehow she felt a little jealous. This was the expression of her deep love for him! ¡°Mr. Dawson is a verymitted person. He has a very good reputation. Maybe Ms. Dawson will notpromise, and she will think of ways to sabotage us. I believe that Mr. Dawson will have a way to shock his daughter. He is in charge of such a big company. How can a person who has spent half his life in the business world without means and ruthlessness get to where he is today?¡± Serenity also felt that Ms. Dawson would not give up easily. Serenity would initially believe Zachary when he imed that Mr. Dawson had a way of keeping Ms. Dawson under control and wouldn¡¯t allow her to bother him again. Even if Mr. Dawson really couldn¡¯t control his daughter anymore, Serenity had never been afraid. Whether it¡¯s Ms. Dawson or someone else, she wouldn¡¯t lose because Zachary¡¯s heart was with her! Chapter 1745 Chapter 1745 Chapter 1745 Zachary kissed Serenity on the face, and said softly: ¡°Honey, don¡¯t worry, your husband, I will always love you, and I am tired after taking care of Sonny for half a day, let¡¯s take a rest first.¡± Considering that Zachary was very busy in the afternoon, Serenity apanied him for a lunch break. Only half an hour after she fell asleep, Zachary got up to work. With his beloved wife around, Zachary was in a good mood and was very dedicated to work. Compared to the quietness of the president¡¯s office, Callum was entertaining Kevin in the vice president¡¯s office. After Kevin apanied his elder brother to socialize, he also returned to the company headquarters. His reason was that he hadn¡¯t returned to the headquarters for a long time to make a fuss. If he didn¡¯t make a fuss, no one would remember him as the third young master of the York family. ¡°Kevin, you¡¯ve been sitting here for an hour, what¡¯s the matter? You just say it¡¯s defenseless, there¡¯s nothing you can¡¯t say between us brothers.¡± Callum kept checking the time, then sat down across from Kevin and talked for an hour. Not long ago, Callum made a phone call to Spring Blossoms, ordered a bunch of flowers, and asked Camryn to deliver them to him by name. He also told the clerk that he had no appetite at noon and couldn¡¯t eat, but he was still hungry now. He believed the clerk would tell Camryn these words. He waited for Camryn to bring him flowers and some food. Camryn obviously cared about him, Serenity told him that after he went to Annenburg, Camryn asked him where he was going, and she missed him a lot, that is, she had feelings for him. But when Callum came back and went to find Camryn, she was either busy and avoided seeing him, or she didn¡¯t pay much attention to him when she saw her. Stubborn girl! Sometimes, Callum really wanted to hold Camryn in his arms and punish her hard mouth severely. Kevin stayed in his office for an hour, Callum didn¡¯t want Kevin to be a light bulb. Kevin: ¡°It¡¯s nothing, but I haven¡¯t chatted with brother Zachary for a long time. I want to chat with brother Zachary. I just have nothing to do in the afternoon. I will spend an afternoon with brother Zachary and have dinner together in the evening. How about we go back to the vi together?¡± Callumughed: ¡°Do you dare to go back? Are you afraid that grandma will urge you?¡± Kevin: ¡°¡­Grandma has given me goals, why is she urging me? Now she is focusing on the other half of the fifth brother.¡± Grandma set a goal for the her fourth grandson, but the fourth grandson had always been taciturn and didn¡¯t talk much, even more silent than his elder brother before marriage. If he didn¡¯t say it, they didn¡¯t know which woman his grandma was targeting, but seeing the fourth grandson, there was no abnormality action. Kevin¡¯s heart was itchy, and he really wanted to know what grandma¡¯s goal was for the fourth grandson. He had eaten and drank wine with the fourth brother a few times, but he didn¡¯t get a word. He was so eloquent that the person who was the most eloquent couldn¡¯t get the words of the fourth brother. That guy was probably the one with the deepest city and the tightest mouth among the nine brothers. Callum: ¡°You also know that grandma gave you a goal. It¡¯s been half a year, and you haven¡¯t seen any moves. You should act like me, and act quickly. Even if you act, you may not be able to win the opponent.¡± Kevin said: ¡°Brother, if you hadn¡¯t fallen in love with Ms. Newman, I would haveN?velDrama.Org content. exchanged with you. Although Ms. Newman¡¯s eyes have not been cured, she is a woman anyway, and anyone can tell at a nce that she is a woman. But who dares to say Hayden is a woman? If my grandma didn¡¯t let me pursue her, I wouldn¡¯t even know she was a woman. She is more manly than me. If I were with her, I always feel like I¡¯m gay.¡± Before grandma handed him the photo, Kevin and Hayden had nothing to do with each other, so naturally he wouldn¡¯t investigate her, so he didn¡¯t know that she was actually a woman. Like everyone else, he thought that Hayden was the young master of the Queen family and the sessor of the Queen Enterprise, but he never thought that Hayden was a woman. In Annenburg, Hayden was distinct from Miss Stoll. Casey Stoll frequently wore short hair and was wearing a unisex dress. Although Casey Stoll had never stated that she was a man, it was simple for people to assume that she was. Everyone also knew that the Stoll family had only two daughters and no sons. Kevin dared to say that Hayden¡¯s parents regarded her as a real man. Callum burst outughing. Callum smiled and said, ¡°Kevin, don¡¯t you think it¡¯s very satisfying for you to gradually dismantle Hayden as a woman? The day the truth is revealed, the entire Jensburg will be shocked.¡± Chapter 1746 Chapter 1746 Chapter 1746 Kevin: ¡°Hayden is very beautiful.¡± Callum said with a smile: ¡°That¡¯s it, she¡¯s beautiful. Her family background is simr to ours, and you don¡¯t need anyone else. Get going, If you¡¯rete, you¡¯ll be sorry when other men find out that Mr. Queen is really a pretty woman. Trust grandma¡¯s eyes! Grandma is good for us.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not that I don¡¯t trust grandma, but¡­ I think How do I want to start? You are all good. From the beginning, you can send flowers and gifts. What should I give? Hayden is now dressed as a man. If I send her flowers, she will be on the headlines the next day.¡± N?velDrama.Org content rights. The third young master of the York family pursued a Man, such explosive news could bombard both Wiltspoon and Jensburg. ¡°knock knock.¡± There was a knock on the door. Callum guessed that it was his fianc¨¦e who came. Camryn refused to acknowledge that she was his fianc¨¦e, but he insisted on it everywhere, supported her, and dealt with the Chandler and Joyner families regarding Camryn. Camryn simply didn¡¯t want to acknowledge it. Kevin: ¡°It must be Ms. Newman.¡± Callum got up, went around the desk, and opened the door for Camryn himself. Kevin¡¯s gaze followed him. Looking at Callum¡¯s cheerful look, he felt both envy and iprehension. Could love really make people happy? Kevin, who was not caught in it, couldn¡¯t feel the taste of love for the time being. Callum opened the door of the office, and really saw Camryn standing at the door, holding a bouquet of flowers in one hand, a bag in the other and her blind crutch. ¡°Camryn, you¡¯re here,e in quickly.¡± Callum gently staggered his body and let Camryn enter. Camryn seemed to hesitate for a moment, but she still walked into Callum¡¯s office. It¡¯s not the first time. She was somewhat familiar with Callum¡¯s office, she didn¡¯t need to use a blind man¡¯s cane to find the way, and she didn¡¯t need Callum to guide her, she could walk to the desk without any mistakes. But when she was about to walk to the desk, she stopped suddenly. There were others in the office. She looked at the other party, but only saw a blurry ck shadow. She couldn¡¯t distinguish the facial features, so she couldn¡¯t see who the other party was. ¡°Ms. Newman.¡± Kevin took the initiative to say hello. After Camryn heard Kevin¡¯s voice, she smiled back, but guessed his identity in her heart. Chapter 1747 Chapter 1747 Chapter 1747 Callum knew Camryn didn¡¯t know Kevin well, and she couldn¡¯t guess the identity of Kevin by hearing the voice, so he took the initiative to exin. Camryn smiled at Kevin again, and said hello: ¡°Hi, third young master.¡± ¡°Ms. Newman, you can just call me Kevin.¡± Kevin said that Ms. Newman was his second sister-inw. Camryn was still smiling. She turned around and handed the bouquet and the snacks she bought to Callum, ¡°Callum, here is the bouquet you asked for, and I brought it to you. I heard you didn¡¯t have enough lunch, so I bought it for you.¡± I¡¯ll give you two boxes of snacks for afternoon tea.¡± Kevin ndered in his heart, did the second brother really not eat well or was he just making an excuse? It¡¯s correct. Kevin abruptly became aware of his justifications for approaching Hayden. If there wasn¡¯t a reason, he would find one; likewise, if there wasn¡¯t an opportunity, he would make one. Callum took the things, put them on the desk, and said to Camryn: ¡°You must be tired after sending the flowers,e and have snacks with me, after the snacks, I¡¯ll take you back. ¡° Camryn: ¡°No need, I¡¯m not hungry. Dal is waiting for me outside.¡± It¡¯s okay if Camryn didn¡¯t say anything, but when she said that Dalton was waiting for her outside thepany, how could Callum let her and Dalton together. Callum said: ¡°It¡¯s rare for Mr. Dal to visit, Let him stay in Wiltspoon for two days to rest, and not bother him constantly. I¡¯m here for you, and I¡¯ll take you back.¡± After Camryn was silent, he said: Camryn: ¡°Dal came to talk to me about work. I¡¯ll go first.¡± With that said, Camryn turned around and left, not forgetting to say goodbye to Kevin. ¡°I¡¯ll take you downstairs.¡± Callum followed her. ¡°Brother, I just want to leave, how about I help you take Ms. Newman downstairs?¡± Kevin said. Callum acted as if he didn¡¯t hear Kevin. Still following Camryn, Kevin, who originally wanted to leave, didn¡¯t want to leave for the time being, so he stayed in the second brother¡¯s office and waited for the second brother toe back. Callum asked Camryn to bring him flowers and food, mainly because he wanted to be alone with her, but he didn¡¯t expect Dalton toe here again, and it was Dalton who sent Camryn here, so his n fell through. They had to send Camryn to Dalton¡¯s car. Even if Dalton and his girlfriend were about to have a happy affair, and Camryn would no longer be there again, Callum would guard against him and regard him as a rival in love. Just like Zachary vs Shawn back then. It¡¯s no secret that Dalton was really waiting for Camryn at the gate of the York Corporation. Now that Camryn had taken over the Newman Enterprise. As a result, Dalton, who helped Camryn take over the Newman family, came into the public¡¯s sight. Not many people knew the real rtionship between him and Camryn. Some people thought Dalton did this to apologize to President Newman, but many people thought he did it simply to apologize to President Newman. In the Newman family, only Camryn and his brother were free, and Trenton was only seventeen this year. He had just finished the college entrance examination at the age of ten and was not yet ready to take over thepany. Although Camryn was blind and couldn¡¯t see, she had a calm mind. With Dalton¡¯s help, she could stabilize Newmans¡¯s legal business. As for the illegal business, it had been sealed up. For Newmans, it was greatly affected. Those who fantasized about taking the opportunity to upy and carve up the Newman family knew that the second young master of the York family was standing behind Camryn, and Dalton was helping them, so they died of that idea immediately. Camryn even fired her own cousin, without showing any affection. The Chandler family and the Joyner family hated her so much. Now he was wholeheartedly instigating Trenton and Camryn to fall out. After Trenton¡¯s college entrance examination, Camryn chose to tell his younger brother everything that happened at home.N?velDrama.Org content. Chapter 1748 Chapter 1748 Chapter 1748 He was still thinking about taking the civil service exam in the future, but he didn¡¯t expect that his parents and second sister hadmitted serious crimes, which cut off his future civil service exams. The most difficult thing for him to ept was that his biological parents killed the eldest sister¡¯s father. They were born to the same mother, but what was the mother¡¯s attitude towards the eldest sister? After knowing the truth, Trenton finally understood why his parents were extremely indifferent to his eldest sister. It turned out that it was because of his second uncle¡¯s death. Trenton felt that it was right for the eldest sister to avenge her father and kill her rtives righteously. Who told his parents tomit a crime? But those were his biological parents, and it was difficult for him to ept that his elder sister, whom he had always respected, treated his parents like this. From knowing the truth to now, Trenton had been avoiding Camryn and staying at a N?velDrama.Org owns this text. ssmate¡¯s house. No matter how many times Camryn went to him, he never saw her. Fortunately, he didn¡¯t see the Chandler family and the Joyner family either, and he didn¡¯t listen to the instigation of those two families. Trenton was not an unreasonable person, he just couldn¡¯t ept such a family change for a while. When Dalton saw Callum escorting Camryn out, he sneered twice, and muttered: ¡°Why are you pretending to be considerate now, knowing that the girl can¡¯t see you, but you still have to ask the girl to send him flowers and food by name.¡± Camryn refused to listen to him, and insisted on continuing to operate Spring Blossoms, and stayed in the flower shop for a lot of time during the day. Dalton thought, she was reluctant to close the flower shop. First, she had a good rtionship with the two shop assistants. If they closed the shop, they would lose their jobs. Second, she liked flowers and nts. The third point was probably because of Callum. She liked Callum, but she couldn¡¯t pass the test in her heart. If she wanted to stay away but didn¡¯t want to part with it, she would always be entangled. If she really wanted to stay away, closed the flower shop, was busy with work every day, and went everywhere, how would she have time to wait for Callum to find her? ¡°Camryn.¡± Dalton got out of the car and went to meet her. ¡°Second young Master York.¡± Dalton greeted politely. Callum also politely called him Mr. Da. Camryn turned her head to Callum, and said in a gentle voice: ¡°Callum, you go back to work, let¡¯s go first.¡± Callum was reluctant, but he could only let her go. He looked at Dalton and said in a low voice: ¡°Mr. Da, my family Camryn will be taken care of by you for the time being. After you finish talking about work matters, call me and I will pick up my family Camryn.¡± In front of Dalton, Callum specially emphasized, ¡®My family is Camryn¡¯. Camryn: ¡°¡­¡± She was toozy to correct this domineering man. The correction didn¡¯t work either. Callum¡¯s mouth got bigger, and he could say anything he wanted. Everyone said that Camryn was his fiancee. Even though they weren¡¯t married yet, everyone in Wiltspoon knew that she was his fiancee. No one listened to her exnation and believed her words. She couldn¡¯t do anything about it. ¡°Second Young Master York, you continue to be such a sc*mbag. The surname of Camryn is Newman; when did she be a member of your york¡¯s family? Let¡¯s discuss it after your wedding to Camryn.¡± ¡°When I hold a wedding with Camryn, Mr. Da, I must ask you to be my best man. With the friendship between you and Camryn, you must be very happy to be my best man. Seeing Camryn happily be my best man beautiful bride.¡± Chapter 1749 Chapter 1749 Chapter 1749 With that said, Dalton opened the car door for Camryn, and after Camryn got in the car, he also returned to the car, not toozy to argue with a scoundrel like Callum, and it would take a long time. Dalton drove quickly and took Camryn away from the York Corporation. Callum stood at the entrance of thepany and watched the car go away. He didn¡¯t go back until it was out of sight. All the security guards on duty were watching Callum. ¡°He¡¯s my future brother-inw.¡± Callum didn¡¯t know what the security guards were thinking, he exined it funny, so as not to spread rumors in thepanyter, saying that his fianc¨¦e ran away with other men. Although Dalton was not Camryn¡¯s real brother, but the two were siblings, Camryn regarded Dalton as an older brother, so he was naturally his future brother-inw. The security guard on duty smiled embarrassingly. They just heard that the vice president called that man Mr. Da, and he had a different surname from the future wife of the vice president. How could they be brothers and sisters, unless they were brothers. Thinking of the status of their vice president, they also believed that no one would dare topete with their vice president for a woman. Callum didn¡¯t care what they thought, as long as he didn¡¯t spread rumors that his fianc¨¦e was robbed. When he returned to the office, he saw that Kevin was still there, and said, ¡°Are you still here?¡± Kevin: ¡°Let¡¯s go, brother.¡± Kevin returned to the desk, picked up the bouquet of flowers, admired them for a while, and said, ¡°The flowers in second sister-inw¡¯s shop are more beautiful than those in other flower shops. No wonder the business in her shop is getting better and better. That¡¯s because others know your thoughts on Ms. Newman, and they went to Spring Blossoms to buy flowers on purpose in order to please you or establish a good rtionship with the future Second Young Mistress in advance.¡± Spring Blossoms¡¯s business was good in the first ce, because In the downtown area, the business was usually better than other flower shops. During the holidays, especially Valentine¡¯s Day, the business was booming. It could keep the boss and workers busy, and the money could be received softly. Now the business was even better, naturally because of Callum¡¯s status. Another point was that everyone was interested in Camryn and wanted to know how a blind person persuaded Dalton to help her take over Newman enterprise. Why did she trust Dalton? But apart from Callum and Serenity, Camryn didn¡¯t tell anyone else, this was her private matter, she didn¡¯t think it was necessary to make it public. As for other people scolding her as a white-eyed wolf, Camryn didn¡¯t try to defend, but when Callum heard someone scolding her like that, he was anxious with others. In front of Camryn, she called her a white-eyed wolf. Even Mrs. Chandler and Mrs. Joyner didn¡¯t dare. The two aunts hated and envied Camryn, a niece. They hated Camryn for pretending to be a pig and eating a tiger. Aunts¡® son has been fired, so he can¡¯t take advantage of it. The n to take advantage of the opportunity to seize her natal family¡¯s property failed. Could they not hate Camryn? Jealous of Camryn, who was blind, could be liked by the second young master of the York family, Callum, and even Serenity didn¡¯t dislike her for being blind. ¡°It¡¯s not that I asked them to help Camryn¡¯s business, don¡¯t expect me to owe them favors.¡± After admiring the bouquet, Callum put down the bouquet, took two boxes of snacks, opened a box of snacks, picked one up and ate it. Callum: ¡°The sweetness of these dim sum is not very sweet but I love to eat it. Camryn bought these dim sum for me because she knows my taste.¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 1750 Chapter 1750 Chapter 1750 Before Kevin got it, Callum pped his hand away and said, ¡°This is what my fianc¨¦e gave me to eat. It¡¯s her heart and love. I enjoy it by myself. If you want to eat it, go to Ms. Queen.¡± Kevin widened his eyes, ¡°Brother, You are too stingy, it¡¯s just a snack, and you don¡¯t let me eat it! Why did I hear that the breakfast that my sister-inw prepared for my eldest brother, my eldest brother couldn¡¯t finish it, so my sister-inw asked my elder brother to pack it for you at thepany? You should learn from big brother, that¡¯s called brotherly love.¡± Callum said while eating snacks: ¡°So he is the big brother, I¡¯m the second, not the big brother and I don¡¯t have such a broad mind.¡± Kevin: ¡°¡­¡± He got up, pretended to be angry, and said, ¡°Stingy, do you think I really want to eat your dim sum? The dim sum made by the pastry chef in our hotel is better than the ones bought outside. There are too many.¡± Callum: ¡°Then you go back to the hotel to eat, and no one will stop you from leaving.¡± Kevin said with a yful smile, ¡°Next time I will tell Ms. Newman directly that I also want to eat the dim sum she bought, and I think she will buy me a few boxes.¡± With that said, Kevin turned around and was about to leave. ¡°Come back.¡± Callum called him to stop, pushed the opened box of dim sum forward and back, and said angrily: ¡°Eat, eat, lest you say I¡¯m stingy, you can only eat one piece.¡± Kevin turned around and picked up a piece of dim sum to eat. After taking a bite, he frowned and said in disgust: ¡°How can the dim sum bought outsidepare with our hotel? It¡¯s not delicious at all. Brother, you still treat it as a baby.¡± Callum: ¡°You take it, you have to finish it, don¡¯t throw it away, this is your future second sister-inw¡¯s love.¡± Kevin: ¡°¡­¡± He provoked Callum to do it well, the piece of snack in his hand, for him who was picky, was chewing on it. Kevin: ¡°Second brother, I remembered that I still have something to deal with, so I¡¯m leaving first.¡± He wanted to run away and throw away the snacks outside, but Callum was not easy to fool him, and asked him: ¡°Leave after eating the snacks, how much more? Eat a few before you go home and tell Grandma that I have no brotherhood and am a cker.¡± Kevin: ¡°No, second brother, I am not the kind of person who likes to make small reports. This is a gift from my future second sister-inw to my second brother, So I can just taste it.¡± Under Callum¡¯s gaze, Kevin braced his scalp and ate the piece of snack that he thought was not tasty. It¡¯s embarrassing for Callum, but he still ate it with relish, as if it was the most delicious snack in the world. Was this because of sentient beings? Anyway, he found it hard to eat. After swallowing that piece of snack, Kevin quickly poured himself a ss of water, poured water vigorously regardless of his image, and after filling the ss of water, he refused the generous sharing of the second brother, and quickly slipped away. He swore that in the future, as long as the second brother shared the food with him, he would not eat it! In the future, the second sister-inw was not picky about food, and she couldn¡¯t make food by herself, so she was not as good as the elder sister-inw. He thought how delicious it was, but in the end¡­ N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Seeing Kevin run away, Callum said: ¡°You have such a picky mouth, be careful to ask for a wife who can¡¯t even fry an egg. Specially for you to eat dark food.¡± Chapter 1751 Chapter 1751 Chapter 1751 -Sea View Vi Area. As long as Dalton and Camryn talked about work matters, they would always be in the sea view vi, and the people there were selected by Dalton for Camryn. Although Camryn was the head of the Newman family, the butler and maids were invited back by Mrs. Newman. They had been with Mrs. Newman for many years, and they were more emotionally inclined to Mrs. Newman. Camryn thought about recing everyone. Considering that her eyes had not been healed yet, if she reced them, she would hire new ones. She didn¡¯t know each other, and she didn¡¯t understand, so it was even less safe. Now these people¡¯s attitude towards Camryn was already respectful on the surface. In fact, their hearts were more inclined to her younger brother, Trenton, especially the butler. There was a kind of guarding the house for Mr. and Mrs. Newman, so that Trenton could take over everything safely. In the study, Camryn held a meeting for the senior managers, while Dalton sat aside to assist. She couldn¡¯t see it, but she had a very good memory. She remembered everything that the secretary and Dalton told her, no matter how big or small. The secretary was hired by Dalton for Camryn, not the secretary next to her stepfather. Camryn had already fired his stepfather¡¯s secretary. That woman was interested in her stepfather, but Dalton said that it was the other party¡¯s wishful thinking. Mr. Newman had no intention of eating wild flowers, and his feelings for Mrs. Newman were still very specific. After the meeting, Dalton saw that there was no water in her ss, so he took the ss and got up to pour her a ss of warm water. ¡°Are you tired?¡± Dalton said distressedly: ¡°Trenton has already graduated from high school; you can bring him along so that he understands Newman¡¯s business and isn¡¯t as tired.¡± Still couldn¡¯t get forgiveness. Everyone thought she was taking over the Newman family¡¯s property. Dalton knew that Camryn was not that cruel, she had always said that she would take everything back, but in fact, she would give her brother what he deserved. President Newman and his wife killed her father because of family property and personal rtionship issues. Her revenge on the couple was to take over Newman¡¯s business besides making them ept legal punishment. The couple knew that all of Newman¡¯s business fell into her hands, and they probably would vomit blood in prison. Mentioning his younger brother, Camryn felt a little guilty, and said, ¡°After Trenton found out everything, he stayed at a ssmate¡¯s house and refused to meet me. I have tried to find him countless times, but it was useless. In the family, I feel the most sorry is Trenton. Trenton is sensible, but they are also his biological parents. He can¡¯t ept the fact that I and his biological parents are tearing apart. I can understand him and won¡¯t me him.¡± Dalton saidfortingly: ¡°Give him some time, and he will slowly ept the reality.¡± Camryn sighed. She waited and waited until Trenton was older, wiser, and a few years older. It might be that the siblings could reconcile. If Trenton would hate her for the rest of his life because of this, she would admit it too. Dalton: ¡°How about I apany you to talk to Trenton again?¡± Camryn shook her head and refused, she said: ¡°Trenton also has a big opinion on you, thinking that you have betrayed his father, you go to him, only It will make him angrier and more ufortable. Let him digest it slowly.¡± Siblings were siblings all their lives. N?velDrama.Org content. Camryn believed that Trenton who had been a warm boy since childhood would figure it out. ¡°Ring ring ring¡­¡± Camryn¡¯s phone rang. Dalton thought it was Callum who called, and said to her: ¡°Second Young master York is really chasing after you, every time he sees me, he guards me like a thief.¡± Chapter 1752 Chapter 1752 Dalton choked. The call wasn¡¯t from Callum, but from Camryn¡¯s aunt Azalea Newman, who had moved married thousands of miles away after getting married and rarely went back to where she was born. She was the third Ms. Newman in the Newman family before she got married. ¡°Auntie Newman.¡± Camryn¡¯s expression changed when she heard her voice. Dalton could see her dependence on Aunt Newman from her face. The rtionship between the aunt and niece was really good. Camryn¡¯s life was saved because of Azalea. In thest ten years, Azalea had also asked famous doctors everywhere for help in curing Camryn¡¯s eyes, and she had frequently taken Camryn to seek medical advice and medicine, as well as to many temples to worship God. ¡°Camryn, where are you now? I went to your flower shop and said that you had gone out, but I didn¡¯t see you when I came home.¡± Because her second brother died and Camryn almost died at the beginning, Azalea told her oldest brother that her sister-inw had a falling out. And now she was back in Wiltspoon, she wouldn¡¯t go into Newman¡¯s house and would stay in a hotel. She went back to her mother¡¯s house, but she just asked at the door, knowing that Camryn was not at home, so she left, then called Camryn. Camryn asked in surprise: ¡°Are you here, Auntie? You didn¡¯t tell me when you were coming, so I couldn¡¯t pick you up at the airport¡±. ¡°I¡¯ve arrived, and I¡¯m going to the hotel first. You can just tell your aunt where you are now, and she¡¯ll find youter.¡± Azalea asked her: ¡°Are you in the York Corporation?¡± Callum liked Camryn, and when Camryn¡¯s aunt found out about this, she turned him down in the same way. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Even though York¡¯s family were open-minded and Second Mrs. York said it didn¡¯t need Camryn to do anything as long as she had money, but Azalea didn¡¯t like the two of them being together. Her niece was ill-fated, and Azalea did not dare or want her niece to take risks again, fearing that her niece¡¯s blindness would eventually make her husband¡¯s family dislike her. It would be better if she married someone with aparable family background. Azalea thought that her niece was overrated for a family as wealthy as the Yorks. Azalea thought that Camryn would be perfect for her if she wasn¡¯t blind. In the final analysis, it was because Camryn was blind that the aunt and niece both had a sense of inferiority. ¡°No, I¡¯m at the Seaview Vi right now. Just after the meeting, Brother Dal came over.¡± Camryn exined, ¡°Auntie, don¡¯t try to find me. I¡¯ll go back as soon as I can. So you don¡¯t have to worry, Brother Dal will see me off. Azalea: ¡°Let¡¯s go. I haven¡¯t been to the beach in a long time, so I¡¯ll spend a few days in your vi, have fun, and eat seafood.¡± Azalea got married in a city far away that didn¡¯t have a sea, and she sometimes missed being by the water. In the life of her birth family, she could tell them she wanted to go to the beach for vacation, and they would make it happen. When she was a child, her parents and older brothers would take her on vacation to the beach every summer. Her second brother was two years younger than she was. The siblings yed together a lot and got along the best. The brothers and sisters were several years older than her, and they didn¡¯t like to take her to y. The two older sisters often bully her, looking at her. But she didn¡¯t turn against her brother and sister because of this. They hurt her second brother and even his only child because they were too mean and cruel. Chapter 1753 Chapter 1753 Azalea and her two elder sisters no longer had sisterhood. Camryn: ¡°It¡¯s fine, I¡¯ll wait for my aunt at home.¡± Azalea: ¡°Okay, then I will take a taxi there now.¡± After a few words, Azalea ended the call with her niece. Her aunt would arrive soon, so Camryn told Dalton: ¡°Brother Dal, let¡¯s go and buy some seafood. My aunt likes seafood.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Dalton apanied Camryn to buy a lot of seafood and returned home. Camryn wanted to clean up the seafood so that her aunt could eat it when she came, but she couldn¡¯t see it, so it was Dalton who helped in the end. ¡°I¡¯m really useless.¡± Camryn said with low self-esteem, ¡°I tried very hard to live like a normal person, but I couldn¡¯t.¡± Daltonforted her: ¡°Sister, don¡¯t worry so much; your aunt will arrive soon. She must have found a miracle doctor because she came to share the good news with you before bringing you to God to have your eyes healed..¡± That meant that Dalton and Azalea kept trying to help Camryn¡¯s eyes, even though he was very busy at work and Azalea was often on the run. Dalton provided financial assistance. Azalea had a distant marriage and lived in luxurious environments with her husband¡¯s family, but her businesster failed and she came dangerously close to dering bankruptcy. Even though it had now ascended once more, it still couldn¡¯t bepared to earlier. Azalea also spent a lot of money to help Camryn¡¯s eyes. After Mr. Newman started to trust the Newman family, Dalton¡¯s ie kept going up, so he decided to help Azalea financially. In the beginning, he was the nicest person, and he couldn¡¯t let Azalea get into money trouble. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Is it so easy to see a miracle doctor? Just let it happen, I don¡¯t want to heal my eyes as strongly as before.¡± There were too many disappointments. After another ten years of living in the dark, Camryn got used to such days, and it would be best if she could recover her eyesight. If she couldn¡¯t, she would live in the dark for the rest of her life. Dalton stopped talking. While the two were talking, the doorbell rang. ¡°Auntie must be here.¡± Camryn happily went to open the door. ¡°Camryn.¡± The person standing at the door of the vi was really her aunt, Azalea. Azalea was over fifty years old, but she looked much older than her two older sisters. Maybe it¡¯s because she worked so hard to heal her niece¡¯s eyes. Her living situation wasn¡¯t as good as that of her two older sisters, so she didn¡¯t go to the beauty parlor as often. The hospital did beauty services, and the skin care products they used were now mid-range. Even so, Azalea had never thought about her birth family¡¯s property, unlike her two sisters, whose husband¡¯s family had such good living conditions that they could be considered wealthy, and was so greedy that she wanted to upy and split up her birth family¡¯s property. ¡°Auntie, I was talking about you with brother Dal just now.¡± Camryn fumbled to open the door for her aunt, with a bright smile on her face. It was only in front of her aunt that shepletely let go of her guard, like a child. After the aunt came in, she took Camryn¡¯s hand and led her back to the house. Dalton was busy in the kitchen, and he wanted to cook a table of seafood feast for Azalea himself. ¡°Auntie.¡± Wearing an apron and holding a spat, Dalton came out of the kitchen and said hello with a smile. Azalea smiled and said, ¡°Dalton, I¡¯m bothering you again.¡± Chapter 1754 Chapter 1754 Once, Azalea thought about matching the two. She felt that Dalton was reliable, and she didn¡¯t dislike Camryn for being blind. Dalton also liked Camryn, but he hid it so well that most people couldn¡¯t see it. It was Camryn who only treated Dalton as an older brother, without any affection between men and women. After Azalea tried several times, she gave up. ¡°No trouble, auntie, you sit down first, and I¡¯ll ask you two to eat after the meal is ready.¡± Dalton said and returned to the kitchen and continued to work. The aunt and niece sat down on the sofa. Camryn: ¡°Auntie, why don¡¯t you bring Jenna over here this time?¡± Jenna was Azalea¡¯s granddaughter. She was only two years old. Everyone adored the little girl because she had a sweet mouth. ¡°Jenna was picked up by her mother for the summer vacation. Camryn, I went to Annenburg a few times. I didn¡¯t see a miracle doctor, but I saw Dr. Carden.¡± Hearing this, Camryn was a little nervous. Dr. Carden was the miracle doctor¡¯s only sessor. It is said that she¡¯s an expert in medicine and poison. She heard that no one dared to offend Dr. Carden, for fear of being poisoned to death quietly by her. ¡°Dr. Carden¡­Will she treat my eyes?¡± Camryn asked softly. After Azalea was silent, she took Camryn¡¯s hand and asked her: ¡°How has the second young master of the York family treated you recently?¡± ¡°He was on a business trip for a while, not long after he came back, he still treats me the same way. He always talking about ¡®my fiancee¡¯, so loud that everyone in Wiltspoon regards me as his fiancee. ¡° N?velDrama.Org content. Azalea: ¡°He didn¡¯t tell you the truth?¡± Camryn was stunned for a moment, and asked, ¡°What truth? What did he lie to me?¡± ¡°He didn¡¯t go on a business trip, he went to Annenburg, and visited Dr. Carden at FC Manor every day. He went there three or four times a day, he was almost a r*scal, and he was about to live in FC Manor, and the fourth young master of the Johnson family even wanted to let the wolf dogs bite him.¡± Hearing this, Camryn hurriedly asked: ¡°Auntie, has he not been killed? Was he bitten by a wolf dog?¡± Azalea: ¡°No, I was making a metaphorical reference. Dr. Carden followed the Johnson family¡¯s fourth young master back to FC Manor. When the second young master York learned of it, he traveled to Annenburg. Running to FC Manor on a daily basis is begging Dr. Carden to heal your eyes. Dr. Carden has a big belly now and is about to give birth, so he temporarily rejected him, but Dr. Carden also promised him that she wille to help you treat your eyes first after giving birth to her child. He also wanted to hire a miracle doctor, but Dr. Carden said that the miracle doctor usually does not go out to see, and the miracle doctor is ying around, and sometimes Dr. Carden can¡¯t get in touch. Because of him, he came back helplessly.¡± Hearing what her aunt said, Camryn remained silent for a long time. It turned out that what her aunt said was true. Callum said that he would definitely invite a miracle doctor or Dr. Carden to treat her eyes. In order to please Dr. Carden, he brought his r*scal to the extreme, so the Fourth Young Master Johnson disliked him and wanted to let wolf dogs bite him. He was all for her. Camryn¡¯s emotions were surging, and it would be a lie to say that she was not moved. After a long time, she said softly, ¡°Why didn¡¯t he tell me about it?¡± Azalea didn¡¯t know. If she hadn¡¯t gone to FC Manor and met Dr. Carden and her husband, she wouldn¡¯t have known that Callum could run faster than her, so she would have gone to see Dr. Carden a long time ago. ¡°Whatever reason he hid it, Camryn, I have to admit it even if I don¡¯t want to. He truly cares about you. I can also tell you¡¯re notpletely uninterested in him. ept it if you can¡¯t let go.¡± Azalea patted the back of Camryn¡¯s hand, ¡°You have to bear the ups and downs of life, and you can¡¯t solve the problem if you keep avoiding and entangled blindly.¡± Chapter 1755 Chapter 1755 Chapter 1755 Azalea patted the back of her hand again, and said, ¡°I will go and assist Dalton in the kitchen.¡± Then, Azalea got up and was about to leave. After remembering something, she sat down again and asked with concern: ¡°Is Trenton still unwilling to see you?¡± Camryn shook his head. Azalea sighed, and said something for Trenton ¡°He is also difficult to do, don¡¯t me him.¡± Even though Camryn was right, it was hard for Trenton to ept that his respected older sister had sent his parents and second sister in with all of his parents. Camryn: ¡°I don¡¯t me him, Trenton is a good boy, I believe he will figure it out slowly.¡± Azalea hummed, reminding Camryn: ¡°You can¡¯t just let Trenton hide outside all the time, and smoke a cigarette every day. Time to find him, don¡¯t be tempted by those people to win over you and instigate Trenton to fight against you. Where does Trenton live now? Give me the address, and I¡¯ll talk to him.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Camryn said, ¡°He went to his ssmate¡¯s town, which was a long way from the city. It took him more than an hour to drive there. It is a veryrge ce. Every time I went to look for him, I went in the front door, but he always left through the back door. I had no idea he was there. You can¡¯t stop him if you can¡¯t get to him.¡± Camryn told her aunt where his brother was staying. ¡°My aunt and second aunt often go to Trenton, and they often call and send him messages. I heard from Trenton¡¯s ssmates that those people also call and send messages, they are all scolding me and speaking ill of me, so that Trenton will be stronger and take back the Newman family. They also told Trenton that as long as Trenton needs them, they are willing to help Trenton take back thepany unconditionally. I can¡¯t see, but not too badly. Trenton still has to go to university. Once the Newman family is handed over to him, how can he have time to take care of the business, won¡¯t it fall into their hands? Now that thepany is under my control, even if Trenton is really taken care of by them Instigate against me, I will not hand over thepany to Trenton, at worst I will file awsuit with him to distribute the property.¡± After a moment of silence, Azalea said: ¡°Camryn, I love Trenton the most out of your three siblings; you know how he has treated you for so many years; it is best if you don¡¯t cry, at least there is still some brotherhood. Don¡¯t be like me and your two aunts and your uncle, Because of your father¡¯s death and your affairs, I have already torn faces with them, and there is no brotherhood. Of course, if Trenton really makes a wrong choice, I will stand firmly on your side. He is always your uncle and your mother¡¯s biological son, with their selfish, ruthless and cruel blood flowing in his bones, maybe he will be even crueler than your uncle in the future. You should also pay attention and sometimes, even your parents may not believe you, let alone you are a half-sibling.¡± The fact that Camryn was almost killed ten years ago left her aunt Azalea with lingering fears, and she worried that Camryn would be like her second brother. In the end, he died in the muttion of his brothers. ¡°auntie, I will.¡± Camryn now gave his younger brother enough time to ept the reality, but she never expected that the two siblings could reconcile as before. Even if they reconciled as before, how could the siblings get better? Usually, she treated her younger brother with indifference. It¡¯s just that she knew that her younger brother had a bit of conscience and would protect her, unlike Carrie who always punished her, bullied her, and ploted against her. She always remembered one thing, that is, she and her siblings didn¡¯t have the same father. Even with the same mother, her mother was extremely cruel to her, but doted on her younger siblings. ¡°Fortunately, you have Dalton and Second Young Master york helping you now, so I can rest assured, otherwise, I really dare not go home with peace of mind.¡± Camryn: ¡°Auntie, I¡¯ll be fine, I¡¯ll be fine. I¡¯ll be fine living better than they do and making them mad.¡± Azalea smiled, ¡°I believe in you, you are a very strong child. Now I have to go to help Dalton.¡± Chapter 1756 Chapter 1756 Chapter 1756 In the kitchen, Azalea asked Dalton about his marriage. Knowing that Dalton and his girlfriend were engaged, she was very happy, and told Dalton to invite her to a wedding wine when they got married. When Dalton nned to get married, he asked his aunt Azalea to be the witness. Camryn was sitting on the sofa, quietly listening to her aunt and Dalton¡¯s talk, her heart had already flown to Callum. Callum did so much for her without telling her. Did he want to surprise her? She still felt that Dr. Carden couldn¡¯te to help her treat her eyes now. Callum was afraid that if he told Camryn, she would think about it every day and hold out too much hope. If there was no hope, she would bepletely disappointed? N?velDrama.Org content. Or might be both. Recalling the little things from knowing Callum to the present. In the beginning, he deliberately approached her because his grandma had selected her for him, and wanted him to approach her, pursue her, and marry her. Camryn couldn¡¯t figure out why the olddy chose her? But the olddy was very kind to her, as if she was the olddy¡¯s granddaughter and Callum picked her up. Later, Camryn felt that Callum was bing more and more sincere to her, and his feelings became more and more sincere. Although she had known him for so long, she didn¡¯t even know what he looked like, but she could feel his feelings for her. Camryn also listened to the Azalea¡¯s persuasion and kept it in her heart. Azalea also objected at first, thinking the same as her. Now she was conversely persuading her to ept Callum¡¯s feelings. Azalea was an elder, someone who hade here had a better eye for seeing people than Camryn. Oh, Camryn couldn¡¯t see people, there was darkness in front of her eyes, she could only look with her heart. Camryn believed that aunt Azalea would never cheat her, nor would she be bought by Callum. Callum only saw Azalea once, and after her disapproved of the two being together, Azalea never saw Callum for the second time. Even every time Azalea came to Wiltspoon, Callum woulde here as soon as possible, wanting to see her parents. In Callum¡¯s eyes, he regarded Azalea as Camryn¡¯s parent, respected her aunt, and valued her aunt very much. His attitude towards Azalea was good. Camryn was very entangled. Callum was on a business trip, Actually he flew to Annenburg for Camryn, and he was not around to pester her for a few days, but she was thinking about him. Camryn knew that Callum had captured her heart. But when she thought that she was blind, she wanted to retreat, fearing that she would drag him down in the end. It¡¯s hard to love, and it¡¯s hard to let go. She was really hard. Both Serenity and Jasmine persuaded her to move forward boldly and take a gamble. She was timid, afraid that she would not be able to lose. Chapter 1757 Chapter 1757 Chapter 1757 ¡°Sister, should we go back to the store or go home?¡± After getting off the expressway, Dalton asked Camryn. After thinking for a while, Camryn said, ¡°Let¡¯s go back to the store first.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Dalton sent her back to the store directly. Back in Spring Blossoms, one assistance was guarding the store, and another assistance was delivering the flowers to the customers who had ordered bouquets. Dalton: ¡°Sister, I have to go back too. Melissa calls and sends messages every day to ask me when I will go back.¡± Camryn said with a smile, ¡°Then go back quickly. As long as you don¡¯t have meetings, you can spend more time with her.¡± During high-level meetings, Dalton had to fly to Wiltspoon to sit beside her and help her operate the video conference. ¡°By the way, bring a bouquet of flowers back home.¡± Camryn said that she was going to help Dalton wrap a bunch of flowers for him to take home and give it to Melissa. Dalton said with a smile: ¡°I still have to take the ne, take the ne with a bouquet N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. of flowers? Forget it, I will go to the flower shop to buy a bouquet of flowers after I go back, and go to the jewelry store to get the set I ordered for her earlier. New jewelry, buy her two sets of skin care products, she will be very happy.¡± ¡°Brother, my sister-inw is so easy to satisfy, unlike other women who want this and that, she never takes the initiative to ask for that.¡± After being moved by his girlfriend Melissa, Dalton epted Camryn as his lifelong sister. He was with his girlfriend wholeheartedly and prepared to start a new family. It was as a result of his girlfriend¡¯s sterling character. He was generally very tolerant, despite the fact that he had moments of jealousy. His assistance with and pampering of Camryn. In his words, without Camryn, there would be no Dalton today. Now Melissa was just as thankful to Camryn as he was, and their rtionship just kept getting better. This made Dalton very moved and satisfied. Camryn said: ¡°My sister-inw is more interested in you than she is in your money. Purchase new skirts for my sister-inw. Skirts are morefortable to wear in the summer.¡± Dalton: ¡°However, your sister-inw dislikes wearing skirts. I¡¯m going to get her a Herm¨¨s bag.¡± Camryn smiled, thinking that Dalton¡¯s gift for Melissa was enough, so she didn¡¯t say anything more. After Dalton sat in the flower shop for a while, he left. Camryn still wanted to keep him for dinner before leaving, but he wanted to go home and return, Camryn didn¡¯t want to keep him for dinner and asked him to fly back to meet Melissa for dinner. The afternoon heat wave was still going strong at five o¡¯clock in the evening. The summer was extremely hot in Wilspoon. Typically, the heat wave begins to subsidete at night, but it returned at dawn. In this kind of weather, the air conditioner was inseparable, and turning on the fan couldn¡¯t solve the problem. After Camryn asked about the situation in the store these days, she wrapped up a bouquet of roses by herself. She hugged the bouquet and said to the assistant: ¡°I¡¯m leaving for a while. I probably won¡¯t be here at night. When you leave work, you will close the store.¡± After a pause, she continued, ¡°This month, I¡¯m going to double your bonuses.¡± The earnings had increased rapidly, and she was no longer in debt. She thanked the two store assistants for their assistance. She couldn¡¯t treat the two store assistants who had been with her for several years while caring for the flowers and nts in the store. They were not only bosses and employees, but also a friendship. ¡°Thank you boss.¡± Hearing that there would be double bonus, the assistant grinned. They remained at Spring Blossoms. They were, in fact, people who treasured flowers because they liked them, so they stayed for a long time. And the boss never treated them badly. They were all aware that the boss had kept the store open until now because she did not want them to lose their jobs. Finding work in such hot weather was exhausting. Chapter 1758 Chapter 1758 Chapter 1758 Back then Callum asked her to send flowers to thepany by herself. After Camryn walked back and forth several times, she had already memorized the route, and could easily go to the York Corporation without anyone¡¯s help. On the way to York Corporation, Camryn did not call Callum. When she arrived at the York Corporation, she didn¡¯t enter thepany either, but waited at the door of thepany. When she arrived at the York Corporation, it was two minutes before the end of get off work time, and some employees had alreadye out of thepany one after another. Camryn was wearing a long white dress today, and was beautiful, holding a bouquet of bright and dazzling flowers, standing there like a fairy. Everyone in the York Corporation knew about her rtionship with Callum. Those who left thepany on foot would greet her, and those who drove out would stop and press the window to greet her. Camryn smiled back. ¡°Camryn.¡± Camryn finally heard a familiar voice. It¡¯s not Callum¡¯s, it¡¯s Serenity¡¯s. At the request of her proud husband, Serenity came to pick him up from get off work again. She arrived earlier than Camryn and waited for him in Zachary¡¯s office for half an hour. When the Rolls-Royce that Zachary often sat in drove out, Serenity saw Camryn who looked like a fairy in white, and quickly asked the driver to stop, and she got out of the car and walked towards Camryn. ¡°Camryn, when did youe? Why don¡¯t you go in?¡± Serenity asked with concern. Seeing her holding the bouquet, she thought it was her brother-inw, Callum who asked her to deliver flowers, and it was rush hour again, so she said, ¡°I¡¯ll call Callum for you and ask him toe out to pick you up. Now there are too many people, it is easy to collide if you go in by yourself.¡± Serenity thought that Camryn was standing here because there were too many people, and Camryn was worried that she would be bumped so she waited here. ¡°Serenity, Callum is on his way.¡± Zachary got out of the car, walked over, and took over his wife¡¯s topic, ¡°Callum is not in thepany this afternoon.¡± ¡°Young Master York.¡± Camryn greeted politely. After Zachary hummed, he said, ¡°Ms. Newman, why didn¡¯t you call Callum when you came? He didn¡¯t even know you were here. Fortunately, he was in the Wiltspoon Hotel to discuss business with a client, so hurry back now I¡¯ll be there soon.¡± Camryn blushed a little, and she whispered, ¡°I-I want to give him a surprise.¡± So she didn¡¯t call Callum in advance, because she thought he would be in the company. Ignoring his identity, he went to discuss business on a regr basis, but whenever Camryn came over, he called her and stayed in thepany to wait for her. Serenity and Zachary exchanged nces, and there was a smile on Serenity¡¯s face. Did Camryn figure it out? Turning passive into active, Camryn took the initiative to send flowers to Callum, and even said that she wanted to surprise Callum. Serenity: ¡°I understood. Then, you continue to wait here for Callum, let¡¯s go first.¡± Camryn nodded repeatedly, ¡°Serenity, go ahead, I¡¯ll just wait here.¡± The York Corporation¡¯s security guards on duty were watching, and Serenity was relieved. After giving Camryn a few words of advice, she and Zachary went back to the car. Zachary: ¡°Callum finally waited for Camryn¡¯s reward.¡± Serenityughed, ¡°Now It¡¯s time to watch when Kevin wins Ms. Queen.¡± Zachary said dotingly: ¡°After watching the y of the third brother, Kevin, there will be the y of the fourth brother and the fifth brother. The rest of them are also growing up, and there will be good ys to watch.¡±N?velDrama.Org content. Chapter 1759 Chapter 1759 Chapter 1759 Zachary said that Callum was on his way back. Camryn felt a little regretful, she would have called Callum in advance if she had known that he was not in thepany, but calling in advance would not be a surprise. Fortunately, Callum rushed back from the Wiltspoon Hotel, so he didn¡¯t keep Camryn waiting long. All the way, he was guessing why Camryn came to him suddenly. When the elder brother, Zachary told him, he only said that Camryn was here, but didn¡¯t say what she was here for. Ever since Camryn left in Dalton¡¯s car that day, he hadn¡¯t seen Camryn for a few days. There was a phone call, but every time he called her, he was talking and she was listening. He knew that Camryn¡¯s aunt, Azalea wasing, and Camryn said she was going to see her, but she refused to let him go, saying that the aunt and niece wanted to get N?velDrama.Org owns this text. along well and didn¡¯t want to be disturbed. When Camryn said this, Callum didn¡¯t go to her and let the aunt and niece get along well. In the past twenty years, she has received some love from her rtives from her aunt. Acting like a child, she didn¡¯t want him to see it. In fact, Callum was very fond of Camryn, the two parties didn¡¯t notice it. As soon as the car stopped, Callum quickly got out of the car and ran towards Camryn. ¡°Camryn.¡± Callum ran to Camryn and saw that she was still holding arge bouquet of roses. After taking a few breaths, he reached out and took the bouquet from her hand, and asked her with a smile: ¡°Is this for me?¡± In the past, Callum called Camryn¡¯s flower shop to order the flowers she sent, and then asked her to send them to thepany. It was the first time Camryn took the initiative to send flowers to him. Camryn faced him and chuckled, ¡°It¡¯s not for you, who is it for?¡± Hearing this, Callum grinned. ¡°This flower is really beautiful, I like it!¡± Callum was now as happy as a fool. It¡¯s just a bunch of flowers, and he could be so happy. Camryn felt his joy, and suddenly felt that she treated him too badly. Callum: ¡°Why don¡¯t you call me in advance and tell me if you want toe over, so that I can wait for you in thepany.¡± Camryn said softly, ¡°I want to give you a surprise. Is it a surprise if I call you and tell you?¡± Callum grinned again, and had to say that she suddenly came to him on her own initiative and brought him a bouquet of flowers, which was indeed a surprise to him. ¡°When did you go back to the city?¡± Callum held the bouquet in one hand, and held Camryn¡¯s hand in the other. His big hands were gentle and strong. When he held her, she felt warm, and she really wanted to hold his hand through all of life¡¯s storms. Camryn: ¡°I just came back in the afternoon, and I came to see you after I sat in the store for a while.¡± She said that she came to him after she came back, and Callum was even happier. At this moment, the smile on his face was as bright as the midday sun. Callum: ¡°Your aunt has gone back?¡± Camryn: ¡°Yes. She has a lot of things at home. For my sake, my aunt has been running around in recent years. Even if Brother Dal helped my aunt financially, my uncle still has some opinions, but my uncle never said a bad word in front of me. Those cousins are also very kind to me, and even my cousin is very kind to me.¡± Camryn thought that her aunt had paid too much for herself in the past ten years, so she felt that she was a drag. Chapter 1760 Chapter 1760 Chapter 1760 In such a situation, ask someone to help. Callum thought that aunt Azalea¡¯s family business would soon get better, and that things would also get better for the family. ¡°I ept your words.¡± Camryn knew that her aunt¡¯s family was almost bankrupt, but luckily, her cousins worked hard, and because of their hard work, the business has gotten better, and the pressure on the family¡¯s finances has gone down. She hoped, of course, that her aunt¡¯s family business could go back to how it was before or even get better. Her aunt¡¯s family were all good people, and good people should be rewarded with good things. Even if the uncle asionally voiced an opinion, believing that the aunt frequently left everything at home and ran around to heal her eyes, he nevertheless secretly provided a great deal of financial assistance and frequently inquired about better ophthalmologists. It was very wise to tolerate her aunt who had been working for her niece for ten years since Azalea¡¯s husband had no blood rtionship to her. Callum: ¡°When did Mr. Dal leave? Before he left, he didn¡¯t invite me to eat or drink. I want to have a few drinks with Mr. Dal.¡± It would be best to get Dalton drunk. Let¡¯s see how much Dalton could drink. Camryn: ¡°My sister-inw misses him so much, he can¡¯t wait to go back, and even prepared a lot of gifts for my sister-inw.¡± Camryn and Callum rarely gave each other gifts, and since she didn¡¯t want to be with him, she didn¡¯t. Callum gave it away, but if she didn¡¯t ept it, she wouldn¡¯t experience the sweet feeling of being happy with each other and putting each other first. After helping Camryn into the car and helping her fasten her seat belt, Callum walked N?velDrama.Org content rights. around the car and returned to the driver¡¯s seat. He handed the bouquet of flowers to Camryn, ¡°Help me hold the bouquet first, I don¡¯t want to let it go. When I drive, I hope I can see this bouquet.¡± Camryn helped him hold the bouquet, and said with a smile: ¡°It¡¯s just a bouquet of flowers.¡± But Callum regarded the bouquet as a treasure. ¡°Even though it¡¯s just a bunch of flowers, this is the first time you¡¯ve thought to give me one. I really value it a lot. After I bring it home, I¡¯ll put it in an antique vase I have. That antique vase is very valuable. The flowers you send must be ced in the most expensive vases.¡± Camryn: ¡°If I send you flowers every day in the future, don¡¯t you have a vase for flower arrangement? I also have vases for sale in my shop, for you to use for flower arrangement?¡± Callumughed Said: ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll buy as many vases as you have avable for sale.¡± Camryn: ¡°If I give you too many, you won¡¯t like it and might think I send you too many flowers every day, forcing you to throw out even more trash.¡± Callum: ¡°No, absolutely not! If you give me a piece of grass, I will keep it.¡± Camryn deliberately said: ¡°Next time I will give you a piece of grass.¡± Camryn: ¡°I can ept it as long as it is given by you.¡± No matter what it is, I like it.¡± Camryn turned her head to look at him, but she couldn¡¯t see anything clearly, asionally felt a little light, but her vision was blurry, and when she blinked and wanted to take a closer look, it was pitch ck again. Camryn: ¡°Callum, don¡¯t drive yet, I¡¯ll ask you a few words.¡± When Callum heard what she said and realized he was going to drive, he turned off the car, gave her a loving nce, and said: ¡°Okay! Ask.¡± He kept beating the drums, not knowing what she was going to ask. He never did anything to apologize to her. Thinking of this, Callum felt relieved again. The most egregious thing he did was kissing her forcibly. But that incident had passed for a long time, and her anger had long since disappeared. ¡°Callum, you said that you like me and love me, can you still take these words seriously?¡± Camryn¡¯s voice was not very loud, but she asked seriously. Chapter 1761 Chapter 1761 Chapter 1761 -Callum didn¡¯t even think about it, so he quickly replied: ¡°Seriously, absolutely true, more real than pearls!¡± From the very beginning, Callum treated her as his wife. The men in the York family adore their wives. Consider his elders¡¯ brother, Zachary and sisters-inw, Serenity. They were all wife ves, without exception. Sometimes, parents would show affection and sprinkle dog food in front of them. In the eyes of his father, his mother was the most important thing. If they made their father angry, they would be criticized at most. If they made their mother angry, their father would just copy the clothes hangers and run after them. Don¡¯t even ask why. The father said that ever since his mother married into the York family, he was reluctant to make his mother angry. They little b*stards dare to make their mother angry. If they don¡¯t beat them, who will they beat? Women who marry into the York family were held in the palm of their hands by their husbands and spoiled like daughters. People say that the man who loved his wife the most loved her like she was his daughter. ¡°Did you go on a business tripst time, did you really go on a business trip or did you go to Annenburg to see a miracle doctor?¡± Callum froze for a moment, and replied honestly: ¡°I went to Annenburg, and I heard that the fourth young master of the Johnson family brought Dr. Carden back. The miracle doctor also came back, so I hurried over, thinking about asking God to heal your eyes.¡± If I can¡¯t find a miracle doctor, it would be great if I could find Dr. Carden, but unfortunately, Dr. Carden has a big belly and is about to give birth. Even if she is willing to treat your eyes, Fourth Young Master Johnson will not agree. I go to FC Manor every N?velDrama.Org content rights. day, and Fourth Young Master Johnson wants to let wolf dogs bite me when he sees me. I know that Dr. Carden is about to give birth, and I also know that I can¡¯t invite her now. I go to FC Manor every day. In fact, I still want to invite the old man, the genius doctor. It¡¯s just that the old man meets friends everywhere, and his whereabouts are erratic. I stayed there for so long. I haven¡¯t seen the old man for many days. Fortunately, Dr. Carden promised that after she gave birth to the baby, she wille to help you treat your eyes as soon as possible, and I will always pay attention to the movement of FC Manor. Once Dr. Carden is out of confinement, I will fly over to ask her toe and treat your eyes.¡± Callum shook Camryn¡¯s hand and said seriously: ¡°Camryn, as I said, if there is hope, No matter where the famous doctor is, I will help you find it. Even if there is no hope, I will not dislike you. ording to what my mother said, I¡¯ll marry you, you don¡¯t need to do anything for me, as long as you can help me spend money. Besides, you are also great. Although your eyes are not very good and you can¡¯t see, it doesn¡¯t affect your normal life. You can even take over Newman¡¯s business, and you can get started in a short time, stabilizing Newman¡¯s situation. It didn¡¯t make Newman¡¯s chaos because of Mr. Newman and his wife¡¯s imprisonment. Which point are you worse than others? Anyway, in my heart, you are a very good girl, and I am afraid that I can¡¯t match you. To me, it¡¯s like that orchid in the sky.¡± Camryn blushed a little after being praised by Callum. She asked him: ¡°Then, let me tell you now, I am willing to be your girlfriend, fiancee, is there still time?¡± Callum didn¡¯t answer her right away, which made Camryn nervous all of a sudden. Did he not like her anymore? It¡¯s been a long time, and he felt that being blind like her was quite a burden, so he regretted it and didn¡¯t want to be with her anymore? His gentle palm rested on her forehead, and he said, ¡°Camryn, I have to make sure if you are serious or if you are in a hurry and talking to coax me.¡± Camryn: ¡°¡­¡± After Callum touched her forehead, he said, ¡°The body temperature is normal, and there is no fever. It can¡¯t be a fever and talking nonsense, and it can¡¯t be a sudden fever. Then it¡¯s serious.¡± Camryn: ¡°¡­¡± The next moment, Callum got out of the car. Camryn didn¡¯t know why. What did Callum get out of the car for? Soon, Camryn knew what Callum was going to do something when he got out of the car. He came to the front of the co-pilot, opened the door, leaned in, helped her unbuckle her seat belt, and said, ¡°Camryn, get out of the car first, get out of the car for a while.¡± Chapter 1762 Chapter 1762 Chapter 1762 When Callum got out of the car, he took the bouquet she was holding and put it on the car seat. The next moment, her feet flew into the air, and he hugged her waist. Then, he hugged her in circles, shouting loudly while circling: ¡°I have a girlfriend, I have a fiancee, Camryn, I love you! I love you! I love you!¡± Some people in the York Corporation just walked out of thepany now, seeing that it was Callum, everyone instinctively stopped to watch the show. Hearing Callum¡¯s ecstatic cheers, everyoneughed. They didn¡¯t know who took the lead in apuding, but Camryn heard the apuse getting louder and louder. There were a lot of onlookers, right? She was a bit shy, more joyful. Fortunately, Callum didn¡¯t reject her. N?velDrama.Org content. He was just so happy that he couldn¡¯t believe that Camryn would agree to him and ept his feelings, so he made a series of actions that puzzled her. At this moment, Camryn knew that his heart for her had never changed. Ever since Callum appeared in front of her, he never disliked her for being blind. He had better choices, but he still chose her. Camryn also knew that from the very beginning, Callum regarded her as his wife, because she was chosen by his grandma, and his love for her also started from scratch, and now it was 100%. Callum, who was ecstatic, hugged Camryn for countless times, and he stopped because he was afraid that Camryn would be dizzy. After stopping, he waited for a few minutes, and when Camryn came to her senses, he gently lifted her chin with his slender fingers, carefully examining her delicate facial features. Camryn was born a beauty and Callum was both talented and handsome, and they were a good match. ¡°Camryn, Camryn¡­¡± Callum¡¯s murmur disappeared from her lips. In front of all the onlookers, Callum and Camryn kissed affectionately. This was a heartto-heart kiss, completely different from the first time he kissed her forcefully. He kissed passionately, and she responded passionately. Callum knew that Camryn was actually very shy, and dared to ept his deep kiss in front of so many people, and even responded enthusiastically to him, which showed that he had really walked into her heart. The high wall she built opened a door for him. He would cherish this door well, and would not let that door close again, but he would not let others open this door. Camryn was now Callum¡¯s girlfriend and fiancee! After the deep kiss, Camryn leaned on his chest, smelling the scent of his body, listening to his heartbeat, her face was stained with red clouds, as gorgeous as peach blossoms in March. ¡°Callum.¡± After adjusting her breath, Camryn asked in a low voice: ¡°Go back to the car, there are many people watching.¡± Callum dotingly said: ¡°Okay, go back to the car, and don¡¯t let them watch any more shows.¡± He let go of her, and then smiled at the crowd: ¡°Thank you for witnessing the moment when my girlfriend and I confirmed our rtionship. When I get married, I invite everyone to have a wedding wine.¡± Camryn: ¡°Alright, just wait for you to treat us to a wedding wine.¡± Callumughed haha. Chapter 1763 Chapter 1763 Chapter 1763 -Camryn heard it but blushed. It turned out that the staff of the York Corporation had long regarded her as the wife of their vice president. Full of joy, Callum helped Camryn get into the car, and thoughtfully helped her fasten her seat belt. The bouquet of flowers she brought was still held by her. After he returned to the car, he asked for her opinion: ¡°Camryn, I want to take you back to Wildridge Manor, would you like to?¡± Callum¡¯s parents secretly visited her several times, because she never epted his proposal. His parents didn¡¯t dare to disturb her because of his feelings, she didn¡¯t know that in the eyes of her future inws, she had already pushed him as a son into a corner, and became the one his parents wanted to spoil. His mother said that she didn¡¯t have a daughter in her life, so she just wanted to have a charming daughter-inw like Camryn. her mother fell in love with Camryn when she saw her, and said that Camryn made people feel cared for at the first sight. He took her back to Wildridge Manor, but the meaning was different. It was like taking her to meet his family, his elders, for the first time. Camryn said nervously: ¡°But, I haven¡¯t prepared any presents yet.¡± Callum was really impatient, he had just agreed to be his girlfriend, and he was about to take her home to meet his parents. Even knowing that his family knew about him and her, Camryn was still a little nervous. When she went, it was like an ugly daughter-inw seeing her inws. ¡°I don¡¯t need a gift, as long as I can take you back home, it will make them happier than giving gifts to my family.¡± Camryn: ¡°That¡¯s not good; the gift is essential. It¡¯s my first meeting with my uncle and aunt; I can¡¯t go there empty-handed, so you take me to a shopping mall now to buy some gifts.¡± Callum smiled, ¡°That¡¯s fine, then I¡¯ll take you to the shopping mall right now, and just buy some food and drink. My family doesn¡¯t need anything. My mother has often said that having a daughter-inw would fill a void in her life.¡± Camryn¡¯s face turned red again. Callum took out his mobile phone, and sent a message to the family group: [I¡¯m taking Camryn back to Wildridge Manor for dinner, and if you have time, everyone will go back to the vi.] Zachary was the first to reply in the group: [Coincidentally, your sister-inw also said to go back to the vi tonight, we are already halfway.] Kevin: [Got it, let¡¯s go home right away.] The rest of the young masters, as long as they were in Wiltspoon, reply to Callum, and they would rush back home. Rowan hadn¡¯t had the summer vacation yet, and he didn¡¯t bring his mobile phone with him at school, so he couldn¡¯t respond to his second brother, Callum. Of course, Callum automatically ignored Rowan as the youngest. Children, the most important thing was to learn. Rowan was not a child anymore, he¡¯s a teenager! When Callum¡¯s parents received the news, His mother immediately replied: [How long will it take to arrive? Is it toote for Mom to ask the chef to cook a few more dishes? Camryn likes to eat sweet and sour fish, right? Mom will let the chef do it now, and he will pick out all the fishbone.] Mrs. York was worried that the future daughter-inw, Camryn would choke on the fishbone when she ate fish because she was blind, so she thought about asking the chef to take the fishbone out first. If Camryn could see how kind her future mother-inw was, she would be very moved. The family crowd was buzzing.N?velDrama.Org content rights. Chapter 1764 Chapter 1764 After the excitement among the family members, the third daughter-inw of Grandma May, Mrs. Madisyn York suddenly loved her eldest son, Kevin. Madisyn asked her eldest son: ¡°Kevin, where have you and my daughter-inw-to-be progressed? When will you bring Ms. Queen back for dinner?¡± Kevin ran away in seconds. Madisyn said angrily to her husband Bowen York after failing to get a response from her son: ¡°Look at your son! His grandma gave him and Callum two photos at the same time. Callum will bring Camryn back for dinner tonight, but your son doesn¡¯t bring my future daughter-inw home. I still don¡¯t know when I will have a daughter-inw.¡± Bowen said: ¡°This kind of thing, don¡¯t be in a hurry. Your son doesn¡¯t want to act yet. What¡¯s the use of us being in a hurry? We can¡¯t run away for him. Go to Jensburg and help him chase his wife?¡± Madisyn said: ¡°Why don¡¯t you worry, Callum will be a father by then, and he¡¯s going back to normal. Our son¡¯s about the same age as Callum, do you think he¡¯s still young? If he¡¯s the ninth child, I won¡¯t worry at all about him.¡± ¡°An excellent woman like Ms. Queen is very sought-after. If your son doesn¡¯t act, he will N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. have time to regret it.¡± After a silence, Bowen said: ¡°I believe that the wealthy women in Jensburg who admire Ms. Queen are all women and will never wed her, so you don¡¯t have to worry about a man robbing your son¡¯s future wife.¡± Hayden had always disguised herself as a man, In the eyes of the people of Jensburg, she was the young master of the Queen family. Even if she was handsome, she was the most handsome man recognized by the young talents in Jensburg. However, those young talents would only be jealous of Hayden¡¯s extraordinary beauty, and would never fall in love with him. There was no way the girls that many of them like would join the army of Hayden adorers after seeing him; how could they not be envious of him? Madisyn choked on her husband¡¯s words. After a while, she said: ¡°Even if Hayden, Kevin¡¯s future wife, is not robbed, he couldn¡¯t stand by and do nothing. Just in time, when he returns for dinner, you will have the opportunity to ask him why he no longer pays attention to his grandma.¡± At first, Madisyn was not concerned about her son¡¯s marriage because she had a mother-inw. As long as the mother-inw was alive, there would be arge tree in their Wildridge Manor¡¯s sky to protect them from the wind and rain, and everything would be safe. Don¡¯t worry about them. Like an old urchin, Madisyn was extremely appreciative to her mother-inw, but she was devoted to the welfare of her children and grandchildren. Bowen: ¡°I¡¯ll ask him when he gets back. I¡¯m not in a rush if you don¡¯t tell me first. Once you say it, I¡¯m also eager to get going. My son is a few months younger than Callum. Callum might get married by the year¡¯s end. But Hayden¡¯s identity hasn¡¯t yet been made public, though.¡± ¡°Stop talking, he¡¯s been stuck in a hotel all day and hasn¡¯t gone to Jensburg, how can he expose Hayden¡¯s identity?¡± Madisyn: ¡°He did nothing because he believed that Hayden would be the one to knock on the door and announce, ¡°Kevin, I am a woman, youe to marry me?¡± Is he dreaming like that? Kevin must be suffering from a condition that he doesn¡¯t want us to know about. Don¡¯t let him leave tonight; I won¡¯t inquire as to why.¡± The younger generation didn¡¯t like living in Wildridge Manor. One was that the elders were all there, and if they make a mistake, it would be easy for the three divisions to interrogate. The second reason was that the Wildridge Manor was far away from the hustle and bustle of the busy city, so it was naturally farther away from the city center. The younger generation needed to go to work. If they lived in the vi, it would take a lot of time to go back and forth. Even if Kevin wanted to sleepte, he was unable to. Summer was bad, and in winter, if the weather was cold, who didn¡¯t want to stay in the warm bed for a while? Therefore, the juniors all bought houses in the urban area, which was convenient for commuting to and from get off work. ¡°Tell mom that our fighting power is not as good as mom alone.¡± The first thing that Bowen thought of was to pull his mother out to serve as the vanguard for the couple. Chapter 1765 Chapter 1765 Bowen: ¡°Mom said, she will of course remind Kevin.¡± After a pause, she said: ¡°We are too unfilial, Kevin was born by us, but you want mom to worry about his life! Husband, think about it, has Mom ever said what she likes or wants recently? Let¡¯s buy it and give it to Mom.¡± Bowen said, ¡°What does Momck? What is mostcking is granddaughter-inw and great-granddaughter.¡± When it came to the matter of the child, Madisyn said in a low voice, ¡°Why hasn¡¯t Serenity moved?¡± Bowen immediately patted his wife and said in a low voice, ¡°Don¡¯t yell. It made Serenity feel ufortable to hear that she was under the greatest pressure, and having a child is also about fate, and it is useless to worry before the fate arrives. If you have sons and daughters in your life, then you will definitely have them, as the old saying goes, sometimes you have to have them in your life, and there is always time in your life, don¡¯t force it. It¡¯s the same reason.¡± Thinking of her three sons, but no daughter, The Madisyn sighed, ¡°The sons and daughters are all debts. They are either here to collect debts or to pay debts. Our three sons must be here to collect debts. Holding my great-granddaughter, I also look forward to having a granddaughter in the future, but I am afraid that three sons will give us nine grandchildren, like my mom now faces nine grandchildren, and she hates it very much.¡± If Madisyn ever had nine grandchildren, her great-grandson would have arge head as well. Even though the olddy was still healthy, she was old. When Madisyn had a son and the son grew up, the olddy had already gone to be with the old man, so she couldn¡¯t control the younger generation. Didn¡¯t Madisyn have to take care of her as a grandmother? Madisyn: ¡°Husband, if we ever have grandchildren, our sons and daughters-inw will take care of them when they be adults. We are old and weak, and we don¡¯t have the strength to worry about it. Don¡¯t worry about things. I think it¡¯s going to hurt.¡± Even now, their sons still depend on Grandma to take care of all the important things in their lives. The younger generation respected and feared Grandma, so Grandma was the only one who could handle them. Grandma May was all for the good of her grandson. Her sons and their wives liked her, and they didn¡¯t have to worry that Grandma May would lose their son. Bowen said: ¡°My children and grandchildren have their own blessings, so I don¡¯t worry about it.¡± He pulled his wife up, and added, ¡°Let¡¯s go to the second brother¡¯s house to see if he needs help. Callum just brought his girlfriend back for the first time, so we need to be ready. Don¡¯t make Ms. Newman feel like we haven¡¯t been paying attention to her.¡± Madisyn: ¡°One day when Kevines back with Hayden, I still want to set off firecrackers.¡± Bowen said with a smile: ¡°There will be such a day, wait until That day, we bought a carload of fireworks and went to a wastnd to set off fireworks to celebrate.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± The old couple walked out of the main house while talking, and went to the big vi next door. It was a small house with two bedrooms. The first ones toe back were Zachary and his wife Serenity, still with Sonny. Because Liberty was still taking care of Duncan in the hospital, Sonny was now following his aunt Serenity. Originally, Zachary and Serenity nned toe back tonight, but they received a group message from Callum on the way back, and the couple were the first to arrive home. When Zachary¡¯s car stopped, Grandma May came over, not to meet her precious grandson. As soon as the car door opened, Grandma May leaned in, hugged Sonny from Serenity¡¯s arms, got out of the car with Sonny in her arms, walked back with a smile.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 1766 Chapter 1766 Sonny also liked to get along with Grandma May very much. Although Grandma May was not Sonny¡¯s own grandma, his mother said that Grandma May was the grandma of his unborn cousins, which was equivalent to his great grandma. ¡°Grandma, I miss you so much, I miss you so much.¡± Sonny had a sweet mouth, watching people talk. He had a very sweet mouth for the person he liked, which could make adults happy. For people he was not familiar with, such as Kevin, he only told the truth. ¡°Grandma knew you wereing, so she asked the uncle in the kitchen to prepare a lot of delicious food for you. Sonny should eat moreter, so that he can grow up faster and go to school earlier.¡± Grandma May gave Sonny a hug as she walked like she was flying and didn¡¯t breathe at all. Tania and the others were following Grandma May. When Grandma May walked back with Sonny in her arms, the elders followed suit. Compared with Zachary who was in his early thirties, the elders liked Sonny more and didn¡¯t bother to look at Zachary. After Zachary got off the car, he saw that the elders were all circling around Sonny. He said to Serenity who just got off the car: ¡°Bringing Sonny back is not only to be a light bulb, but also to steal the limelight. In the past, when I came back, the elders are all around me asking about my health, but now, they don¡¯t even look at me.¡± Serenityughed and said, ¡°Don¡¯t talk about light bulbs or Sonny will get mad. Don¡¯t call him a light bulb because he said his name is Sonny.¡± She deliberately teased her husband: ¡°You have a gloomy expression throughout the day, and I prefer Sonny¡¯s adorable happy smile. Sonny¡¯s mouth is sweet, unlike you, like yourself Who likes you? The family members¡¯ greetings are all dry andck sweetness.¡± Zachary stretched out his hand to wrap her arms around her shoulders, and walked N?velDrama.Org content rights. towards the main house in the center, smiling as he walked, ¡°As long as you like me, that¡¯s fine. It doesn¡¯t matter if other people like me or not.¡± Seeing that the elders had already surrounded Grandma May and Sonny and entered the house, no one turned to look at the couple, so Zachary let him hold her and walked quickly to the house. When the door was open, she took his hand away and said, ¡°At home, don¡¯t hug each other.¡± Zachary: ¡°The elders will be happy if we hug each other.¡± If the couple got along like strangers, the elders would be happy. It¡¯s time to worry about gray hair, just like when he and Serenity treated each other like guests, grandma was so anxious. The young couple went into the house. The elders were still circling around Sonny, and Sonny called grandpa and grandma from time to time, coaxing the elders into joy. The main reason was that Sonny was cute, white and tender, really attractive. After Zachary and Serenity entered the room, no one looked at them. Zachary pulled Serenity to sit in the most conspicuous seat, but he was quickly squeezed away by his parents, so he had to take his wife to sit in the corner. Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Husband, not only you have fallen out of favor, but I have also fallen out of favor.¡± Since she was the first daughter-inw of the York family¡¯s generation, in the York family, she was very favored as the eldest mistress. Zachary pretended to be wronged: ¡°I have been favored for thirty years, and it only takes a yang to fall out of favor.¡± And it happened within a minute. Chapter 1767 Chapter 1767 For the York family who had not had a daughter in several generations, they would really go crazy for a daughter. Zachary and Serenity, who were ignored by their elders in the corner, were also happy and rxed, and they could still love each other. Not long after, the others came back one after another. Then, there were more and more people sitting in the corner and They exchanged nces. Serenityughed so hard her stomach hurt when she saw the York brothers¡¯ expressions. At this time, the butler came in, walked to Grandma May, and reminded her and everyone with a smile: ¡°Grandma, the second young master brought Ms. Newman back.¡± Grandma may: ¡°Camryn is here, let¡¯s all go to Callum¡¯s room.¡± Grandma May lived in the central main house of the York family, and since Callum¡¯s room was not far from hers, she urged that everyone meet there. Camryn, who was sitting in the car, looked very calm on the surface, but in fact, she was very nervous. Even though Callum had told Camryn many times that his parents wouldn¡¯t dislike her, and that all the older people in his family were very open-minded and would respect the younger generation¡¯s choice, all she had to do to ept his love was open her heart and wait to be pampered by her future inws. Camryn was still nervous and scared, afraid that everyone would see her in person and find that she, a blind person, was not as good as they imagined, and would not be able to ept it, and would not agree with her being with Callum. She predicted that many people would have irrational thoughts and concerns when they met their parents for the first time. ¡°Callum.¡± Camryn touched Callum¡¯s hand and grabbed it tightly, and whispered, ¡°I¡¯m still a little nervous and scared. What if your parents don¡¯t like me?¡± She finally took this step, epted Callum¡¯s feelings. She believed that Callum was also sincere to her. If Callum¡¯s parents didn¡¯t like her and despised her, she would definitely not have the courage to fight against Callum. ¡°Camryn, you¡¯re all back home. You probably won¡¯t listen to what I say. Why don¡¯t you follow me out of the car and go into the house to feel how much the elders love you?¡± Callum held her back, ¡°Are you worried? It will never happen,e on, I will help you get out of the car.¡± Yes, Camryn had gone back to his house, even though she had to get out of the car and face it even though she was scared. Camryn adjusted her mood, and said, ¡°Okay.¡± Callum thoughtfully helped Camryn get out of the car. Camryn insisted on buying a gift for everyone, but Callum told the butler, ¡°There are still a lot of gifts, let someone move them for us.¡± There were many people in his family, and Camryn didn¡¯t want to leave any one behind, so she bought them all as meeting gifts. So he stuffed the back seat and trunk of his car to the brim. Callum even teased Camryn that he should drive a truck and drive her home, because she bought too many gifts for meeting. He said that he didn¡¯t need to buy it, but she insisted on buying it. It meant that the first meeting couldn¡¯t be empty-handed. He also said that when he met her aunt Azalea for the first time, he also went there with big bags.N?velDrama.Org content rights. Chapter 1768 Chapter 1768 After the butler called a maid to help carry the gifts out of the car, Callum led Camryn and walked slowly towards his home. The maid followed with bags of things. Knowing that Camryn walked by memorizing the steps, Callum walked very slowly so that Camryn could memorize the steps. When passing the main house in the center, Callum said to her: ¡°Now we are standing in front of the main house in the center. There are several steps in front of the door. This is the main house in the center of our Wildridge Manor. My grandma and uncle¡¯s family lives here.¡± Camryn nodded, and she memorized the distance from the parking lot to the main house in the center. ¡°Shall we go in? First go see grandma?¡± Camryn asked him softly. Judging from his usual respect for Zachary, Camryn thought Callum would bring her into the main house of the center. N?velDrama.Org content. ¡°Let¡¯s go inter. Let¡¯s go back to our house first. Grandma and the others are not in the main house in the center right now, they are waiting at our house.¡± He said and wanted to go to his house. When he got off the car, he also saw that the elders had gone to his house. After being silent for a while, Camryn said softly: ¡°We are not married yet.¡± Camryn felt a little embarrassed because Callum brought her into Wildridge Manor, which was his, not hers. Callum leaned in front of her and said with a low smile, ¡°From the moment I saw your photo, I brought you into my world and became a family with me. My home is your home, it¡¯s our home.¡± After speaking, he kissed her on the cheek. Camryn¡¯s face was stained a little red, remembering the butler and the others followed, she quickly pushed him lightly, ¡°Everyone is watching.¡± Callum smiled lowly again, stood up straight, and led her forward again. While walking, he said: ¡°Our house is only a few hundred meters away from the uncle¡¯s house, and it is also a big vi with a small yard. Most of the ground in the small yard is paved with floor tiles, and some flowers and nts are nted on the edge of the low wall. I originally wanted to build a swimming pool in the yard, but my mother said the sun is too hot in summer, so the swimming pool is finally built indoors.¡± ¡°Wildridge Manor is very big, right?¡± Camryn had heard before that the richest man lived in arge manor. ¡°It¡¯s quite big, but I¡¯m used to living in it, so I think it¡¯s that big. The vi is in the garden style, because my grandma likes the garden style. If there are not a few modern buildings, when you walk into the Wildridge Manor, you will think that you are back to ancient times.¡± There were also many antique buildings in the vi. For example, there were pavilions, terraces, winding corridors, rockery fountains and water pavilions. ¡°Tonight, let¡¯s stay at home. Tomorrow, I will take you on a tour of the area to familiarize you with it. The vi contains arge lotus pond. Now is when the lotus is at its peak bloom. I can even take you out on the lotus pond in a boat.¡± Camryn: ¡°Although I can¡¯t see it, hearing you describe it like this makes me feel so beautiful.¡± Callum held her hand tightly, ¡°Wait for your eyes to heal, Camryn. I swear to go with you to enjoy the lotus every year. This is going to be our future home, a ce where we will live for all of our days. Your eyes will undoubtedly heal, and the lotus will bloom every year.¡± Camryn smiled and said, ¡°Okay.¡± His promise was so beautiful and sweet! Chapter 1769 Chapter 1769 Then he led her and began to climb the steps. He didn¡¯t dare to walk fast, for fear that Camryn would fall. Camryn heard that the room was lively and knew that there were many people. Callum told her that his elders were waiting in the house, as well as his brothers, and she heard the voices of Zachary and Serenity. It seemed that there was still Sonny¡¯s voice, Liberty had to take care of Mr. Lewis now, and Sonny often followed his aunt. ¡°Camryn.¡± Seeing Callum leading Camryn in, Serenity stood up to greet him as the elder sister-iw. ¡°Serenity.¡± Camryn stopped and responded to Serenity. She didn¡¯t think she was shy, but her face was always hot. It must be the weather. N?velDrama.Org content rights. Camryn found a reason for her blushing. ¡°You just arrived, are you tired?¡± Serenity asked with concern. Camryn smiled and shook her head, ¡°I¡¯m not tired, I just arrived. I have bad eyesight and can¡¯t walk fast, so I kept everyone waiting.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay, we just came here too.¡± Serenity looked at Callum with a smile and held Camryn¡¯s hand. ¡°Sister-inw.¡± Callum called Serenity, he didn¡¯t let go of Camryn just because Serenity greeted him. Serenity nodded, ¡°Grandma and the others are here, you can take Camryn there.¡± Camryn listened to the conversation between her Aunt and Grandma May, and was very grateful in her heart. The elders of the York family were waiting for her. As soon as she entered the house, Serenity, the eldest young mistress, stood up to greet her. She couldn¡¯t see their every move, but she could feel that they valued her. Callum hummed, and he led Camryn to the elders. ¡°Grandma.¡± He called Grandma May first, and Grandma May responded cheerfully. After she responded, she said to Camryn: ¡°Camryn, now you are in front of grandma.¡± Camryn was face-to-face at first. The one who was facing Tania heard Grandma May¡¯s answer, so she realized that Grandma May was in front of her, so she quickly turned to Grandma May and called out politely: ¡°Grandma.¡± Grandma May smiled and asked her kindly: ¡°Are you tired after more than an hour¡¯s journey? Sit down.¡± Seeing the maid carrying big and small bags, Grandma May said softly, ¡°Why do you still buy so many things? There is nothing missing at home. Are you willing toe back with Callum to see us? After a meal, we will be very happy.¡± Camryn: ¡°I didn¡¯t buy anything, but I prepared a little gift for everyone. It¡¯s my little thought.¡± After hearing Grandma May¡¯s kind voice, Camryn felt nervous. The fate between her and Callum was drawn up by Grandma May. She was grateful to Grandma May. In her previous life, she did not know how much incense she had burnt. In this life, she could get Grandma May¡¯s attention and give her and Callum a red line. For a man as good as Callum, what kind of woman would he want to marry? Grandma May stretched out her hand, grabbed Camryn, and pulled her closer. Tania, who was sitting next to Grandma May, was very considerate, and immediately moved to the side to make space for Camryn. ¡°Good boy, we¡¯ve epted your wish. You¡¯ll say hello to everyone first, and then we will have a good talk.¡± She patted the back of Camryn¡¯s hand, indicating that Callum would take Camryn to see the elders one by one again. Chapter 1770 Chapter 1770 When Callum introduced Camryn to everyone, everyone was quiet and only spoke out when it was time for them to speak, so that Camryn could remember who was speaking. Camryn was once again moved by the thoughtfulness of York¡¯s family. Callum really never lied to her. His family members were excellent; whether they were parents or siblings, they wouldn¡¯t disapprove of her or think that she wasn¡¯t deserving of him. It was because she was too inferior and never dared to ept Callum¡¯s feelings. It was only now that she took the first step bravely. If her aunt Azalea hadn¡¯t gone to FC Manor in Annenburg and knew that Callum went to seek medical treatment for her, she probably wouldn¡¯t be able to muster up the courage to take this step. Grandma May was the head of the York family, but she was the gentlest olddy, Camryn didn¡¯t put on airs of Grandma May at all. Rose, Callum¡¯s biological mother, took Camryn¡¯s hand to greet the cold and warm. Camryn could feel whether these people were really nice to her or whether they were just acting. They were very sincere, and her blindness was nothing to them. It¡¯s the same as what Rose said in front of her eldest aunt, as long as Camryn could spend money, the York family would not despise her. After Camryn followed Callum back to Wildridge Manor to meet his parents, the two of them confirmed their romantic rtionship again, and their rtionship developed by leaps and bounds. The aunt Azalea, Dalton and Trenton, on behalf of their natal family, met with the elders of the York family to discuss their wedding date. Let¡¯s talk about Trenton, it was very difficult for him to ept that his biological parents are murderers. Since he knew the truth, he borrowed to live with a ssmate and did not want to see his elder sister Camryn. In fact, he didn¡¯t hold a grudge against Camryn, he just had no face to face his sister. His biological parents killed his sister¡¯s own father, and his parents also took over the property left by his second uncle to his sister, and treated his sister very badly, and almost killed her sister. He felt that he was sorry for her sister. He heard that his sister and Callum confirmed their love rtionship, and after they met their parents, the two elders wanted to discuss their wedding matters. He felt that although he was not his elder sister¡¯s elder, he was her only brother. He can¡¯t ignore it. Therefore, when aunt Azalea flew to Wiltspoon again, Trenton showed up and insisted on going with her and Dalton to meet the elders of the York family. Since Camryn¡¯s eyes hadn¡¯t healed yet, Callum meant to get engaged first, and the wedding date would be a year or twoter. He hoped that Camryn could see the grand wedding he had carefully prepared for her, not to mention the wedding of the eldest brother and sister-inw hadn¡¯t done it yet. He was not in a hurry. Whether Camryn¡¯s eyes could be cured was what worried him the most right now. He first got engaged because he wanted to do so. Grandma May picked an auspicious day and held an engagement ceremony for the two of them. Camryn became Callum¡¯s real fianc¨¦e. After attending Callum¡¯s engagement banquet, Zachary flew to Annenburg with Serenity and drank the full moon wine from Ben and Jane¡¯s sons and daughters. At work, life returns to normal. ¡­. In the hospital. Duncan was sitting in a wheelchair, and Liberty pushed him, nning to push him downstairs to rx. Liberty took care of Duncan for a period of time, and Duncan¡¯s injured leg healed a lot. The doctor said that he could be discharged from the hospital in a week and go home to rest, and he will start rehabilitation after a period of rest. ¡°You don¡¯t have to follow.¡± After Duncan was pushed out of the ward, he said to his bodyguards. ¡°Yes.¡± Even if Duncan didn¡¯t order, and Ms. Liberty was present, the bodyguards would usually not follow, so as not to be a light bulb.N?velDrama.Org content. Chapter 1771 Chapter 1771 Duncan couldn¡¯t walk on the ground, and she just pushed him out to rx, lest he lie on the bed every day with a very bad temper. Duncan, who had been in the hospital for another month, saw that he was still unable to stand up, and his temper became more and more irritable. He always felt that he would never recover, and even wanted to drive Liberty away, so that Liberty would not need to take care of him. He even said that he was willing to give Liberty $600,000 a month, as long as Liberty didn¡¯t appear in front of him. He also felt sorry for Liberty¡¯s tiredness. Liberty had only taken care of him for more than a month, and he had lost a lot of weight. He still didn¡¯t know when he would get better. For the past two days, he was sitting in a wheelchair, and Liberty pushed him downstairs to rx in the open space in front of the inpatient department. Only then did Duncan restrain his temper a little. Liberty pushed Duncan towards the elevator entrance. When they arrived at the elevator door, the elevator door just opened. Mrs. Lewis and Mr. Lewis came out of the elevator. Seeing Liberty pushing their son, Mrs. Lewis stepped forward quickly. ¡°Liberty, is Duncan going to have an examination?¡± Mrs. Lewis was carrying two insted lunch boxes, and Mr. Lewis was also holding a large bag and a small bag. The insted lunch box contained tonic soup, and one was for Duncan, another one was for Liberty to drink. Liberty lost a lot of weight, and Mrs. Lewis also saw it. She was distressed and guilty. After one month, she paid Liberty $300,000, but Liberty did not ept her sry. Liberty said She was repaying Duncan¡¯s debt of favor. But the two of them had to act together, making Duncan think that Liberty really took care of him for money. No matter how he chased Liberty away, Liberty said that she needed to make money, and she was a fool if she had money, which made Duncan helpless. He wanted to force Liberty out, but he couldn¡¯t walk, so he could only stare at Liberty, and Liberty was not afraid of his stare, which made Duncan hate himself even more for being unable to walk. ¡°Auntie, don¡¯t worry, it¡¯s not for an examination, it¡¯s because Mr. Lewis is in a bad mood. I want to push him downstairs to rx.¡± Liberty added, ¡°Auntie, do you want to go together?¡± Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Okay.¡± Mrs. Lewis handed an insted lunch box to her husband, and said, ¡°Take these things back to the ward. Liberty and I will go downstairs with Duncan to rx.¡± Mr. Lewis took the insted lunch box and said to Liberty gently: ¡°Liberty, thank you for your hard work.¡± Duncan took his father¡¯s words, ¡°High ie is naturally apanied by hard work. Dad, do you think it¡¯s easy to make money? If she thinks it¡¯s hard work, she doesn¡¯t have to make this money. I¡¯ll give her $20,000 a day, as long as she¡¯s fine if she doesn¡¯t appear in front of me. She doesn¡¯t even want to make that money, she¡¯s a hard-working person.¡± ¡°Duncan.¡± Mr. Lewis called his son, ¡°Can you stop talking? Things have happened for such a long time, you should face the reality.¡± Duncan thumped his leg, ¡°Yes, I should face the reality, I have already faced the reality, now I am a useless person, these two legs are grown on my body, they can¡¯t y their role, they are used as decoration on my body, it is better to saw it off.¡± ¡°Duncan.¡± ¡°Mr. Lewis.¡± Mrs. Lewis and Liberty hurriedly stopped Duncan from beating his leg again. N?velDrama.Org content. Mrs. Lewis said to her husband: ¡°Husband, can you say a few words less? Duncan, don¡¯t argue with your father. You are not a waste person, you will get better. The doctor said that your legs are painful and you are conscious, that¡¯s a good thing.¡± If there was no pain and no consciousness, then he would really be a useless person. Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Liberty, push him away, we¡¯ll walk downstairs instead of using the elevator.¡± Chapter 1772 Chapter 1772 liberty and Mrs. Lewis pushed Duncan downstairs together. As soon as they got down to the first floor, they saw medical staff pushing patients into the elevator. Liberty saw a familiar face. It was George, the husband of her former eldest sister Chelsea. George also saw Liberty and stopped instinctively. ¡°Liberty.¡± George called her. Liberty wanted to walk over as if she didn¡¯t know each other, but the other party called her, so she had to stop, Mrs. Lewis looked at George, and asked Liberty: ¡°Who is he?¡± Liberty: ¡°He¡¯s my ex-husband Hank¡¯s brother-inw.¡± Mrs. Lewis said oh, she took the initiative to push Duncan forward, and said to Liberty: ¡°We will wait for you outside.¡± Mrs. Lewis didn¡¯t want to get involved in these matters because George appeared to have something to say to Liberty. After Mrs. Lewis pushed Duncan away, Liberty asked: ¡°Mr. Repton, Why are you here?! Someone in the family is sick and hospitalized?¡± George said sadly: ¡°It¡¯s your sister.¡± Liberty: ¡°What¡¯s wrong with Miss Brown?¡± In Liberty¡¯s opinion, Chelsea was always on the go, worried that the world wouldn¡¯t be in chaos, and she hardly ever even caught a cold or a fever, let alone needed to go to the hospital. George said: ¡°She is not sick, but hurt. Jessica, the dangerous woman, stabbed her. She didn¡¯t hit anything important, though, so her life is not in danger. Leave the emergency room and go straight to the hospital. Still there is Hank. He was the most hurt person in the emergency room. He had been N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. stabbed several times, and his parents were waiting outside the room while I took care of Chelsea.¡± Hearing this, Liberty was shocked, and she asked: ¡°Mr. Repton, what¡¯s going on? Why did Jessica stab them?¡± Jessica stabbed Mrs. Brown, Chelsea, and Liberty were not surprised, but she stabbed Hank and stabbed them several times and she was surprised. Didn¡¯t she love Hank very much? When did the young couple turn against each other, to the point of killing each other? No matter what Hank said, he was Sonny¡¯s biological father. Liberty didn¡¯t want Sonny to lose his father at such a young age, so he asked a few more questions about Hank¡¯s situation. George said: ¡°I don¡¯t know about Hank¡¯s situation. When I received the call, they were all sent to the hospital. I rushed all the way here. When I arrived, Chelsea was just pushed out. Fortunately, Chelsea¡¯s life was not in danger. I heard from my father that Hank was stabbed several times and was in shock when he was sent to the hospital. It is clear that after Jessica stabbed them, she called the police, and now she has been taken away by the police. She was already guilty, and now she is guilty, if she is not sentenced to death, I will sue thisd poisonous woman. She couldn¡¯t take Chelsea with her if she didn¡¯t want to live. If she wanted to die, she could die by herself. She could jump off a building, jump into a river, or hang herself. Why use a knife? If something happens to Chelsea, my two children will not have a mother, and that Jessica is such a poisonous woman!¡± George scolded Jessica thousands of times. Chapter 1773 Chapter 1773 Dogs would jump over walls when they were in a hurry, and rabbits would bite people when they were in a hurry. Really pushed people to a dead end, angrily resisted, wouldn¡¯t it cause a murder? Liberty was not surprised that Jessica would stab Chelsea. As for Chelsea¡¯s discordant temperament, she always took care of her family¡¯s affairs, so it would be strange if she didn¡¯t get hated by her sister-inw. Before Liberty and Hank divorced, she hated Chelsea. Fortunately, Chelsea would not be living at her younger brother¡¯s house like she was now, and she still had a breather time, so as not to go crazy and kill people. Chelsea hated that Jessica almost snatched Lucas away when she teamed up with outsiders, so she targeted Jessica everywhere. As long as she lived in her mother¡¯s house, she would alienate the rtionship between the younger brother and her husband, and provoke conflicts between her parents and Jessica, which often made Brown¡¯s family restless. People who make mud have three-point temperament. Jessica couldn¡¯t bear Chelsea¡¯s actions, which put Chelsea in the hospital. Liberty thought that married daughters often go back to their natal family, and their natal family would definitely wee them, but she always meddle in the affairs of her natal siblings, and gossip about her sister-inw in front of her parents, that was disgusting. Sooner orter, Chelsea would end up like this. What surprises Liberty is how Jessica stabbed Hank, or stabbed him to death. Hank treated Jessica very well, whether it was before or after marriage; even if his parents and sister always scolded Jessica in front of him, said bad things about her, and asked him to divorce Jessica, he always stood by her side. He also tried his best to mediate the conflict between the two sides, but his parents and sister were stubborn people, so his mediation had no effect. Not long ago, Jessica had another miscarriage and lost her first child. It was inevitable that she felt sad. Could it be because of this incident that Jessica hated Hank and wanted to stab Hank to death? Liberty could only guess. George: ¡°Liberty, Hank has always been Sonny¡¯s real father. If you have time, you should go and have a look. In case Hank can¡¯t make it¡­ always ask Sonny toe and see his father for thest time, he will give his father a ride.¡± At the end of George¡¯s words, his expression was gloomy, he did not expect such a big event to happen to inws, nor did he expect that his brother-inw would end up like this. Thinking of the old days, George¡¯s face was also burning hot. Although he didn¡¯t bully Liberty openly and calcted the benefits of him, his wife always went back to her mother¡¯s house to take advantage of it. His parents-inw helped him take care of the children, and his brother-inw subsidized his parents-inw¡¯s living expenses. For them, he enjoys the benefits brought by inws, and had never persuaded his wife at all. It could be said that his brother-inw¡¯s end today also had his share of credit. When Liberty was Chelsea¡¯s sister-inw before, She would say hello, how could there ever be such a scene as to draw a knife? Really wrong! Hank shouldn¡¯t have cheated or divorced! ¡°Liberty, Chelsea and I did not do well in the past, and now I solemnly apologize to you, really, I¡¯m sorry!¡± George felt that they should all apologize to Liberty. After Liberty was silent, she said: ¡°The past is over, I don¡¯t want to mention it again. I will go to the emergency room to check the situationter. Mr. Repton, go and take care of Miss Zhou.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. George nodded and left. Liberty waited for George to leave before she walked out of the inpatient department. Mrs. Lewis pushed Duncan and walked slowly in the open space at the entrance of the inpatient department. There were many people in the hospital, and people in a hurry could be seen everywhere. From the beginning, Duncan was afraid to go downstairs to meet strangers, and he was afraid that all he would receive were sympathetic looks. Chapter 1774 Chapter 1774 In the hospital, it was a ce where they were used to seeing death. What is a wheelchairpared to death? ¡°Liberty, we are here.¡± Mrs. Lewis saw Libertying out, stopped and waved to her. Duncan¡¯s face was sullen, as if someone owed him tens of billions and didn¡¯t pay it back. When Liberty was talking to George just now, Duncan heard Liberty address George, and guessed that it was from Liberty¡¯s ex-husband¡¯s family. He was very upset. The Brown family was really lingering; Liberty could always meet people from the Brown family, or the Brown family would let them eat and pester Liberty. She had been divorced for more than half a year, what did Brown family want? Did the Brown family think Liberty was wanted by no one except Hank? The Brown family was too good at putting money on Hank¡¯s face. Before Liberty lost weight, Duncan never disliked Liberty. He just thought that Liberty should lose weight and not gain any more weight. Being too fat was not good, and the red light would light up on the body. So when Liberty joined the Lewis & Co. to work, Duncan asked Liberty to run a fewps in thepany every day to help Liberty lose weight. It was not because he disliked Liberty. Duncan would never dislike Liberty who had lost weight. He didn¡¯t know when he fell in love with Liberty. He only knew that no matter whether she was fat or thin, he had never disliked Liberty. Liberty came over. ¡°What did your ex-husband¡¯s brother-inw stop you for?¡± Mrs. Lewis asked. Duncan sullenly, pursed his lips, and would not take the initiative to ask Liberty. ¡°Something happened to the Brown family.¡± Liberty replied, ¡°Jessica stabbed Hank and his sister. Hank was seriously injured and is still in the emergency room. Chelsea was not seriously injured and has been hospitalized.¡± Hearing this, Duncan frowned. Mrs. Lewis also knew about the Brown family¡¯s affairs, mainly rted to Mrs. Brown and Hank, so she inquired about the past of Liberty and the Brown family. She was a little shocked and surprised, ¡°Didn¡¯t Hank treat Jessica very well? How could Jessica stab him to death? If she stabbed Chelsea to death, I wouldn¡¯t be surprised. Chelsea, who is this woman? When her sister-inw wants to stab her to death.¡± Liberty said: ¡°I don¡¯t know what caused the husband and wife to turn against each other. It is possible that Hank was violent at home during the quarrel. He has a previous record of domestic violence.¡± Hank had domestically abused her. She resisted at the time, and chased Hank for several blocks with a kitchen knife, scaring Hank so much that he didn¡¯t dare to do anything to her again. Liberty: ¡°Mr. Repton also rushed to the hospital just after receiving a call. He still doesn¡¯t know the reason for the murder.¡± Mrs. Lewis looked at her son and said to Liberty: ¡°Liberty, you and Hank are divorced, but he still Sonny¡¯s father, do you want to go and check on the situation?¡± Liberty wanted to check on her ex-husband¡¯s life and death, but she also wanted to come out to say hello to Mrs. Lewis and Duncan.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Chapter 1775 Chapter 1775 Liberty said: ¡°Auntie, I want to go and see, if he can¡¯t be rescued, Sonny is his son, he has to give him a ride. Auntie, please apany Mr. Lewis first.¡± Mrs. Lewis: ¡°I¡¯ll just apany Duncan. You can go quickly. If you need help, tell us.¡± Liberty nodded and left quickly. After she left, Mrs. Lewis pushed Duncan and said slowly, ¡°Look at Hank¡¯s current ending; this is the price of cheating. Duncan, if you marry a wife and have children in the future, you must be loyal to your marriage and be loyal to your family. If you think you can¡¯t be loyal to your marriage and family, Mom hopes that you will be single for the rest of your life and not harm other people¡¯s daughters. Mom doesn¡¯t have a daughter, but Mom is also a woman; who wants to see her own son with another woman? If you don¡¯t love her anymore, you can file for divorce. After divorce, you will be single again. Whoever you like and pursue is their freedom.¡± Duncan said coldly: ¡°Mom, I¡¯ll just call. You don¡¯t have to worry that your son will end up like Hank.¡± ¡°What stupid things are you talking about? You can get better. When you recover, you have to pursue Liberty and marry her. When you be a stepdad, mom doesn¡¯t object anymore, because, as you said at the beginning, this is your choice to marry her, you want to live, and as long as you feel happy, mom won¡¯t interfere. Sonny is a very cute child, and mom likes him too. He will be Mom¡¯s grandson; Mom can ept it now.¡± Duncan¡¯s voice became colder, ¡°Mom, don¡¯t you think I¡¯m selfish? When I was doing well, you objected to me being with Liberty and mother-child rtionship. I¡¯m disabled now, and I can¡¯t even stand up on my own. You just say that if you want me to like Liberty, I should pursue Liberty and marry Liberty. You want Liberty to be my free nanny. I won¡¯t marry her. If she doesn¡¯t leave for a day and still takes care of me, Mom, you will pay her wages, and she doesn¡¯t owe me anything!¡± He wouldn¡¯t treat Liberty as a free nanny. Mrs. Lewis was speechless by her son¡¯s usation. After a while, she admitted: ¡°I¡¯m selfish. I just want you to get better. You can say whatever you want. As long as you get better, you want to marry a woman and go home and I doesn¡¯t care anymore. I regret it so much now, why did I stop you from looking for Liberty, if it wasn¡¯t for me, you wouldn¡¯t¡­it¡¯s all my fault!¡± Duncan had heard enough of his mother¡¯s self-me, he interrupted his mother to continue to me herself, and said: ¡°That day, I didn¡¯t want to go to Liberty, I wanted to go back to thepany, I have an important meeting that day. Mom, you questioned me like that, and I let you misunderstand that I wanted to go to Liberty.¡± He was pursuing Liberty, but he would not leave thepany¡¯s affairs alone. He usually handled the most important things, and other things were arranged, so he had a lot of time to pursue and apany Liberty. Companionship was the longest confession of love, and he ned to spend the rest of his life with Liberty. But, unfortunately, he was disabled now, not to mention that Liberty still had no affection for him, even if he had affection, he would refuse, not wanting to drag Liberty down. Liberty deserved a better man. ¡°It¡¯s my fault no matter what.¡± Mrs. Lewis med herself, ¡°So I want you to get well soon.¡± Liberty couldn¡¯t hear what the mother and son of the Lewis family said. When she went to the emergency room, Seeing Mrs. Brown and Mr. Brown still guarding the door of the emergency room, the couple stood together, Mr. Brown held his wife¡¯s hand tightly, and Mrs. Brown also held her husband hand tightly as well. The couple silentlyforted each other. Mrs. Brown was still crying, and the tears on her face hadn¡¯t dried. ¡°Uncle, aunt.¡± Liberty walked in front of them and called out softly. When Mr. Brown and Mrs. Brown saw that it was Liberty, Mrs. Brown immediately N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. grabbed Liberty¡¯s hand and wanted to say something, but she couldn¡¯t say a word, she could only cry Chapter 1776 Chapter 1776 All she could do was help Mrs. Brown to sit down on a chair, then took out a small pack of tissues that she carried with her, and handed Mrs. Brown to wipe away her tears. Mr. Brown¡¯s eyes were also red, and he turned his back from time to time to wipe his eyes. The couple had only one son, Hank. If something happened to the son, what would they do? It took a long time for Mrs. Brown to stop crying. But she was still unable to speak because she was too emotional. Liberty looked at Mr. Brown, and asked with concern: ¡°Uncle, how is Hank?¡± Mr. Brown choked up and said, ¡°The doctor hasn¡¯t yet emerged, and I¡¯ve just seen other doctors entering with blood bags while he¡¯s still being saved. He lost a lot of blood as they were also delivered in bags one by one¡­¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Thinking of his son¡¯s tragic situation, Mr. Brown burst into tears again. He never dreamed that Jessica would actually stab his son, the kind that stabbed him to death. If they hadn¡¯t heard the movement and quickly used the spare key to open the door and go in, the son might have died on the spot. His daughter was also stabbed by Jessica in order to save her son. That woman was too ruthless, too ruthless! It¡¯s in vain that his son treated her so well. Jessica squatted in the bathroom for a long time. When she came out, her legs were numb. She identally fell and lost the child. Hank never med her. No matter what people said about her, Hank always defended her, refused to divorce her, how could she do it! Mr. Brown was puzzled. His thoughts were the same as Liberty¡¯s. He felt that if Jessica wanted to kill someone, shouldn¡¯t they be the ones she wanted to kill the most? Why did Jessica kill Hank? How could Hank, a big man, be killed by Jessica? When the tragedy happened, the young couple was resting in the room, and no one knew how they got into a fight to the point of going to the knife. Mr. Brown was d that his wife couldn¡¯t change his sh!t, so he stole the key to his son¡¯s room, saying it was a spare, but in fact, he wanted to be able to enter his son¡¯s room at any time, and see how many houses his daughter-inw had lost. When Liberty was the daughter-inw of the Brown family, Mrs. Brown did this all the time. ¡°Liberty¡­¡± Mrs. Brown was finally able to continue talking. She took Liberty¡¯s hand and cried: ¡°What if Hank¡­ I will talk to your Uncle, what should we do?¡± Liberty could onlyfort and say, ¡°Auntie, the doctor hasn¡¯t given up on Hank, which means he can still be saved, so don¡¯t worry too much.¡± ¡°Liberty, bring Sonny here, just in case ¡­Maybe let Sonny give his father a ride.¡± The person who said this was Mr. Brown. When the sound fell, he was poohed by his wife and pped a few times by his wife. Mrs. Brown also scolded him: ¡°What unlucky words do you use, Hank won¡¯t pass away, Liberty is correct, the doctors are still hopeful that they can save him, Hank won¡¯t pass away, he won¡¯t pass away! He won¡¯t pass away because he¡¯s still young and only in his early 30s.¡± Chapter 1777 Chapter 1777 Libertyforted her a few more words. ¡°Serenity and Elisa went to the vegetable market today, Sonny should have followed her back to my hometown, I called Serenity to ask when they wille back.¡± Liberty did not refuse the request of the former inws. Regardless of whether Hank could get over it or not, Sonny was his son, and it was right for Sonny to visit Hank in the hospital. Divorce is a divorce. Liberty never spoke ill of Hank in front of his son, let alone taught his son to resent Hank. Anyway, Hank paid Sonny¡¯s child support. Mrs. Brown cried and nodded. She had a sense of foreboding, thinking that her son would not be able to survive. But she kept praying in her heart that her son would survive. Liberty walked aside to call Serenity. Serenity quickly answered her sister¡¯s call, and she asked on the phone: ¡°Sister, what¡¯s the matter?¡± At this time, Liberty was in the hospital taking care of the hard-spoken and soft-hearted Mr. Lewis, and when she suddenly called, Serenity was always worried. what¡¯s the matter. Liberty: ¡°Sonny with you?¡± Serenity: ¡°Elisa and I went back to our hometown, the road is too far, so we didn¡¯t take Sonny with us, and Sonny followed Zachary in hispany. Sister, is it Mr. Lewis who wants to see Sonny?¡± Serenity thought it was Duncan who missed Sonny. Sonny would follow his mother to the hospital to visit Duncan every few days. Duncan could harden his heart to adults, but he couldn¡¯t harden his heart to Sonny. If Sonny cried twice, he would soften his heart and agree to everything immediately Sonny. After Liberty was silent, she said: ¡°Serenity, something happened to Hank and Chelsea. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. I don¡¯t know why. Jessica stabbed Hank and Chelsea. Chelsea was not seriously injured and her life was not in danger. Hank has been in the emergency room for several hours. The situation may not be very good. His parents are worried that he will not survive, so they begged me to take Sonny to the hospital. If Hank fails, ask Sonny to send him for his Dad¡¯sst ride.¡± Serenity was stunned for a moment, and then asked: ¡°Sister, is this true? Chelsea was stabbed by Jessica, wasn¡¯t Chelsea who was seriously injured? Hank treated her very well, could it be Hank? Hank¡¯s fatal nature is hard to change, and domestic violence again?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know the reason. Chelsea was cut by Jessica to save Hank. It means that Jessica¡¯s target is Hank. He wanted to kill Hank. Hank, a big man, was counter-killed. Either he was slow to react, or He just fell asleep, and Jessica did it suddenly.¡± Before the divorce, Liberty once said harsh words to Hank¡¯s domestic violence, she said that if Hank dared to domestic violence her, as long as Hank Asleep, she could chop Hank up, unless Hank stayed up all the time, or never came home. Hank was stunned, and the husband and wife were so embarrassed that they didn¡¯t dare to do it again. Hank¡¯s current fate, Serenity felt very happy, but for the sake of her nephew, she didn¡¯t show it, but said to her sister: ¡°Then I will call Zachary and ask Zachary to send Sonny to the hospital.¡± Liberty hummed. Knowing that her sister was busy now, Liberty quickly ended the call. When Liberty returned to her former inws, the door of the emergency room finally opened. Chapter 1778 Chapter 1778 Doctor: ¡°Hank¡¯s Family.¡± ¡°Doctor, we are his parents. Doctor, how is my son doing?¡± Mr. Brown helped his wife with weak legs to meet her, and asked anxiously. The doctor said: ¡°He has too severe of an injury. Wepleted every operation that was possible. He¡¯s still in danger. He needs to spend some time in the intensive care unit. It is up to him whether he can wake up.¡± Mrs. Brown¡¯s body limped. Mr. Brown couldn¡¯t hold his wife steady, but Liberty gave her a hand to stabilize her, and Mr. Brown didn¡¯t let her fall to the ground. ¡°Doctor, save my son, please save my son, I¡¯m just a son, he¡¯s still so young¡­¡± Mrs. Brown grabbed the doctor¡¯s white coat and begged. ¡°Auntie.¡± Liberty pulled her hand back, apologized and thanked the doctor. The doctor understood the feelings of the family members. He said: ¡°We have done everything we can. We are not sure whether the injured will survive. You should be mentally prepared.¡± In the words of the doctor, Hank was seriously injured. After so many doctors¡¯ efforts to rescue him, Hank was still not out of danger. He had been transferred to the ICU to live. Whether he could wake up and came out of the ICU alive depended on Hank himself. In a word, the doctor had done his best. ¡°Thank you doctor.¡± Liberty thanked the doctor again. Mr. Brown persuaded his wife: ¡°Don¡¯t cry, Hank is still alive, don¡¯t cry.¡± Mrs. Brown was helped to sit back on the chair, took a tissue from Liberty and wiped her tears, then she remembered something, and said to Liberty: ¡°Hank is still alive, has been moved to the intensive care unit, and cannot allow his family to stay with him. Liberty, you call Serenity so that she doesn¡¯t have to send Sonny here. Don¡¯t let Sonny visit the hospital because he won¡¯t be able to see his father, even when he comes. Sonny is so little, and it¡¯s not a good ce.¡± Mrs. Brown had no idea if Hank would live or not. If the son had died, Sonny was the only grandchild who could provide for the two elderly people¡¯s needs, and Mrs. Brown¡¯s focus on Sonny had suddenly increased significantly. Mr. Brown also said: ¡°Liberty, your aunt is right, Sonny can¡¯t see Hank when hees here now, so he should note here.¡± Liberty thought that her ex-husband had already been transferred to the ICU, even if sonny was sent here, he really couldn¡¯t see his father. So, she agreed to the two elders and called Zachary, so that Zachary would not have to send Sonny over. Hank was still in danger, but at least Sonny knew he was still alive. Under Liberty¡¯sfort, Mr. Brown and Mrs. Brown became more emotionally stable. Mr. Brown said to Liberty: ¡°Liberty, thank you foring to see us andfort us. Now Hank doesn¡¯t need to take care of you. You can go about your business. Your aunt and I can just stay here.¡± Libertyforted them again. After saying a few words to them, she left. After Liberty left, Mrs. Brown beat her heart, and regretfully said: ¡°It¡¯s wrong, it¡¯s wrong, it¡¯s all wrong!¡± Mr. Brown took her hand, ¡°What are you talking about now, let¡¯s pray Hank can get through it is the real thing, why is that Jessica doing it to death!¡± Only when she lost, she would regret it, what¡¯s the use? At the beginning, Mrs. Brown yelled the loudest, and the son could marry a better one after divorce. Now, where was it going? Jessica was not half as good as Liberty.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 1779 Chapter 1779 Jessica had been apprehended by the police, she was going to jail, but she was only able to serve outside prison because she was pregnant; now the child was dead, and she had stabbed Hank, which would have added to the crime if Hank hadn¡¯t survived. She just fatally stabbed someone with a knife. If there were a new trial, the death penalty would likely not be acquitted. Liberty wanted to go to the inpatient department to find Mrs. Lewis and Duncan, but received a call from Mrs. Lewis telling her that the mother and son had returned to the ward. Liberty went directly to Duncan¡¯s ward. ¡°Miss Liberty, you are finally back. The fourth young master is losing his temper again and smashed things. He smashed everything he could touch.¡± As soon as Liberty appeared, the bodyguards of the Lewis family told her. ¡°Why is Mr. Lewis losing his temper again?¡± Liberty asked as she pushed the door open to go in. The bodyguard replied: ¡°We don¡¯t know either. After Madam Lewis pushed the Fourth Young Master back, within two minutes, the Fourth Young Master started arguing loudly, saying that he was going to be discharged from the hospital and go home. Madam Lewisforted him, but he couldn¡¯t listen and started smashing things. ¡± Liberty had already walked into the ward. Duncan: ¡°I want to be discharged from the hospital, I want to go home, I don¡¯t want to stay here anymore, I don¡¯t want to stay here for a minute!¡± Duncan didn¡¯t lie back on the hospital bed, he was still sitting in a wheelchair, so he could slide the wheelchair by himself, They smashed whatever they caught, and the ward was already in a mess. Doctors and nurses were telling him to calm down. Mrs. Lewis was anxious, angry and distressed about this. Mr. Lewis, on the other hand, acted like he was used to it, and silently began to clean up the mess all over the floor. The doctor: ¡°Mr. Lewis, you can¡¯t be discharged from the hospital yet. If you persist for a while, you will be discharged. You can see that you are much better now, and you can no longer..¡± ¡°How am I? How am I? Tell me What¡¯s wrong with me? I can¡¯t even walk by myself, so sitting in a wheelchair is fine? I¡¯m lying down here, and I¡¯m lying down when I¡¯m discharged from the hospital. I¡¯m going to be discharged from the hospital, and I¡¯ll lie down at home!¡± Duncan was actually in a bad mood. Liberty went to visit her ex-husband, knowing that Hank¡¯s life and death were at stake, since he was Sonny¡¯s father, it was normal for Liberty to visit her, but Duncan was just in a bad mood. After the car ident, Duncan didn¡¯t feel better. A well-behaved person spent the entire day in a hospital bed, unable to walk. Regardless of a person¡¯s disposition, he would eventually experience an emotional breakdown after a lengthy period. ¡°Duncan, listen to the doctor. The doctor said that you will have to stay in the hospital for a while before you can be discharged. Let¡¯s listen to the doctor, shall we?¡± Mrs. Lewis coaxed Duncan like a child. ¡°I don¡¯t want to. I want to be discharged. I¡¯m going to be discharged now. If you don¡¯t let me go, I won¡¯t stay anymore. I¡¯ll go by myself.¡± Duncan refused willfully, insisting on leaving the hospital now. He slid the wheelchair by himself again, trying to get out. Liberty came in just in time, and the two almost ran into each other. ¡°Mr. Lewis, where are you going?¡± Liberty asked him. With a sullen face, Duncan said in a vicious voice: ¡°I¡¯m going to be discharged from the hospital, I¡¯m going to be discharged now! Liberty, you go and help me with the discharge procedures, I¡¯m going to be discharged from the hospital, I¡¯m lying down everywhere, it¡¯s not the same when I go home?¡± Liberty looked at the mess all over the floor, then looked at the doctor, and asked the doctor: ¡°Doctor, can Mr. Lewis be discharged early?¡± The doctor said: ¡°Mr. Lewis¡¯s other injuries have healed very well. He only has a leg injury. It is reasonable to say that he can be discharged from the hospital. If Mr. Lewis insists on being discharged from the hospital, we can also discharge him, but don¡¯t let Mr. Lewis go too soon. For rehabilitation, let him recuperate for a while before he can start rehabilitation.¡± Duncan: ¡°You heard me, the doctor said that I can be discharged from the hospital, go, go and help me with the discharge procedures.¡±N?velDrama.Org content. Chapter 1780 Chapter 1780 Duncan immediately urged Liberty to help him with the discharge procedures. The doctor ndered in his heart: You make trouble like this every day, which makes their doctors and nurses very tired. Leaving the hospital early will not have a big impact. If you want to leave the hospital, just leave the hospital. The Lewis family was rich and had their own doctor. After Duncan got out of the hospital, the Lewis family would hire doctors and nurses to take care of him. ¡°Doctor, can my son really be discharged from the hospital?¡± Mrs. Lewis was worried that something unexpected would happen to her son after he was discharged from the hospital. The doctor said: ¡°Mr. Lewis insists on leaving the hospital, so let him leave the hospital and go home to recover from his injuries. Maybe he will feel better. When he is in a good mood, he will recover quickly.¡± Now that the doctor said so, Mrs. Lewis called the bodyguards to clean up the ward, she and her husband went to help Duncan go through the discharge procedures, and the angry Duncan was handed over to Liberty to take care of him so that he would not make trouble again. Finally he could be discharged from the hospital. Duncan¡¯s mood suddenly improved, and he stopped making noises. He just sat in the living room, watching TV quietly, and waited for his parents to help himplete the discharge procedures before going home. Liberty sat beside him, but he didn¡¯t know what she was thinking. Duncan paid attention to her expression. Suddenly asked her: ¡°Is that ex-husband of yours still alive?¡± Liberty: ¡°He¡¯s still alive.¡± Duncan curled his lips and said, ¡°It¡¯s a fate.¡± After a moment of silence, Liberty said, ¡°The doctor said he was seriously injured, and he is still alive now. Those who were not out of danger were transferred to the ICU ward for a period of time to see, the doctor said they had tried their best, and whether he could wake up would depend on his own destiny.¡± ¡°What¡¯s going on? Scmbags and scmbags will have their day.¡± Duncan¡¯s words were ironic. He could be said to have witnessed the whole process before and after the divorce between Hank and Liberty. Hank was very kind to Jessica. After Liberty¡¯s ident, every time Hank came to visit Liberty, he wanted to intercede for Jessica. When it came to the safety of his son, Hank still wanted to keep Jessica, which showed that he really loved Jessica. Liberty: ¡°I don¡¯t know. It happened so suddenly. Except for the person involved, no one knows the reason for the knife.¡± Duncan fell silent. There was a knock on the door. Then the door of the ward was pushed open. ¡°Mom, Uncle Duncan.¡± Sonny shouted cheerfully. Hearing Sonny¡¯s voice, Duncan¡¯s face looked much better. ¡°Sonny.¡± Liberty hugged his son who ran over, looked at Zachary who followed in, and Zachary exined: ¡°Sonny said that he missed Uncle Duncan and insisted oning to the hospital. We were on the way again. So I continued toe over.¡± ¡°Duncan.¡± Zachary walked to his friend, ¡°How do you feel today?¡± Duncan: ¡°Zachary, I can be discharged from the hospital. My parents are going to help me with the discharge procedures, and they are also helping me pack up my things, I can finally leave the hospital, and if I stay here again, I will really go crazy.¡± Maybe he was allowed to leave the hospital, after Duncan saw Zachary, he didn¡¯t show his face to him, nor did he refuse him came in. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Even if he refused to see anyone like before, Zachary and the others woulde whenever they wanted after Liberty broke in forcefully, and when Duncan showed them a face, Zachary would say: ¡°If you have the ability, you stand, get up and drive us all out.¡± Duncan was so angry that he wanted to jump up and fight with Zachary, but he really couldn¡¯t stand up and chase away people. Chapter 1781 Chapter 1781 Zachary looked at Liberty and Liberty also nodded, and congratted Duncan. ¡°Duncan, congrattions on your recovery and discharge from the hospital. It¡¯s a coincidence that I came here and I can pick you up and leave the hospital.¡± Duncan said, ¡°Where do you lie down? I don¡¯t need infusions anymore. I can feel good when I lie down at home.¡± If it was possible, he would never want to go to the hospital in his life. ¡°Uncle Duncan, are you okay?¡± Sonny walked to Duncan¡¯s side and asked with concern. Duncan: ¡°Uncle Duncan can be discharged from the hospital today.¡± Duncan pulled Sonny closer, hugged him, and wanted Sonny to sit on hisp, but Sonny struggled to get off the ground. The little guy said sensiblely: ¡°Uncle Duncan I can¡¯t sit on yourp.¡± Sonny remembered that his mom said that Uncle Duncan¡¯s foot was injured and it N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. would take a while to heal, so she told him not to sit on hisp. Duncan smiled and said: ¡°Sonny, you can sit quietly, Uncle Duncan can still bear it.¡± The pain hurt, but it wasn¡¯t as bad as it had been right after the car ident. He picked up Sonny again and let Sonny sit on hisp. Sonny didn¡¯t dare to move while sitting, and asked him from time to time: ¡°Uncle Duncan, will your leg hurt? If it hurts, I will go to the ground.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Facing the sensible Sonny, Duncan was in a very good mood, with more smiles on his face. Zachary watched their conversation from a distance. Liberty helped to pack Duncan¡¯s things. asionally, Duncan looked at the figure she was packing up, with his love hidden in his eyes, but soon, he would look away. ¡°Zachary, what¡¯s going on in mypany now?¡± Duncan¡¯s brother was temporarily helping to take care of the Lewis & Co., maybe because he just took over and was not familiar with it. Sometimes he would ask his brother about things in thepany. Brother¡¯s answer always made Duncan speechless. Ask Zachary to be more clear. After all, the two big Corporations cooperate deeply. Zachary: ¡°It¡¯s running normally. Brother Lewis is a little more familiar with it now, and he¡¯s not as flustered as he was at the beginning.¡± Although the four brothers of the Lewis family were capable, the Lewis & Co. was Duncan¡¯s personal property, and he had always been in charge of it himself.His brothers only know that Lewis & Co. had already ranked among the tens of billions of companies, but they didn¡¯t know about the internal affairs of thepany. Second Brother Lewis was initially upset about letting someone take over the company who wasn¡¯t familiar with the Lewis family, but by this point he had gradually begun to adjust and was knowledgeable about the business¡¯s operations. ¡°Duncan, take good care of your injuries. Don¡¯t worry about thepany¡¯s affairs. Besides Josh and I are watching over.¡± Duncan hummed, but said dejected words, ¡°I don¡¯t know if I will have a chance to come back again to work in thepany.¡± ¡°Duncan, don¡¯t talk about being discouraged, you will get better, you will definitely get better, and then do a good job of rehabilitation, persevere, you can stand up again, and Josh and I are waiting for you to y ball, ride a horse, go to sea together.¡± Duncan did not speak. His Recovery was the longest. After a long time, Duncan said: ¡°If I can¡¯t get rid of the wheelchair for the rest of my life, I will go to work in a wheelchair and let the bodyguards follow me, it will not have much impact.¡± Chapter 1782 Chapter 1782 Chapter 1782 Duncan was silent, the doctor only said that he had a chance of recovery, but did not say that he would definitely recover as before. ¡°Uncle Duncan,e on!¡± Sonny could understand the adult¡¯s conversation, he waved his arm to Duncan abruptly, asking Duncan toe on. Duncan touched Sonny¡¯s head affectionately. Zachary said: ¡°My sister bought a restaurant and it¡¯s being refurbished. With a simple renovation, it will be open for business soon. Duncan, you can see that my sister has worked so hard. You can¡¯t give up.¡± Duncan: ¡°Alright.¡± Liberty never talked to Duncan about business matters, and Duncan didn¡¯t ask. He thought that it was impossible for him and Liberty to be together. Unless he could recover, he would never pursue Liberty again. If Liberty could meet a better man¡­ Thinking of Liberty marrying another man, Duncan¡¯s heart felt like a knife was twisted, and his legs hurt even more. ¡°All You Can Eat is still open. She changed the way of operation, which is to let two assistance buy shares in the form of shares, and they can share dividends. Then Let You Eat will be handed over to two small shareholders. She holds 80% of the shares, signed the contract, and hired two other assistance to help. She just goes back to check the ounts every day, and can free up time to take care of the restaurant.¡± Liberty¡¯s new restaurant had a bigger investment, and the money and deposits she freed up from All You Can Eat were invested in the new restaurant. Duncan groaned and stopped talking. He knew that Liberty was working hard to make money, but she was not working hard to make money for him, but to create better living conditions for Sonny. Of course, Duncan also hoped that Liberty¡¯s career would get better and better. Her goal was to upy a ce in the catering industry one day, and her All You Can Eat could open countless chain stores. Zachary hugged Sonny, then put Sonny on the ground, and said to Sonny: ¡°Sonny, go and help your mother, uncle and uncle Duncan need to talk.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Sonny obediently responded. Zachary got up and pushed Duncan out. He pushed Duncan and wandered in the corridor, asking him, ¡°Duncan, what is the reason for the sudden discharge from the hospital? Is it rted to Hank¡¯s ident?¡± After a silence, Duncan honestly admitted: ¡°Hank is also in the hospital now, and he is Sonny¡¯s biological father, I don¡¯t want Liberty to visit that sc*mbag often.¡± Duncan was discharged from the hospital, and Liberty took money to do business, so she followed him to his house to take care of him, so she didn¡¯t have time to run every day to her ex-husband in the hospital. Zachary knew that there was something wrong with Duncan¡¯s sudden discharge from the hospital. He couldn¡¯t help but speak for Liberty: ¡°You also said Hank is Sonny¡¯s own father. My sister went to see him for the sake of Sonny. She won¡¯t visit Hank every day. You think too much, you still care about my sister so much, but you always lose your temper and chase her away.¡± Duncan: ¡°Zachary, we have been friends for many years, others don¡¯t understand me, you still don¡¯t understand me? Look at me now,, how can I give Liberty happiness? She doesn¡¯t have to be troubled, she has lost a lot of weight to take care of me.¡± Besides, Liberty hadn¡¯t fallen in love with him yet. She would be taken care of by Duncan. First, Liberty¡¯s mom begged him. Second, Liberty said that she opened a new restaurant to make money and needed a certain amount of money to run the business. Duncan never had any doubt that Liberty was N?velDrama.Org owns this text. using money to do things. Another point was that Liberty was repaying him for a favor he had done for her. She thought he had done too much for her and that she owed him too much. Chapter 1783 Chapter 1783 Chapter 1783 If you really think that way, then I will tell my grandma to introduce some good men to my sister and let them meet her. If they meet, if there is a spark, Serenity and I, as my sister¡¯s family, will definitely let my sister marry off in a good manner.¡± Duncan¡¯s face turned pale. He actually cared about Liberty, very much. Hank had an ident, and his life might be lost. Liberty went to see Hank, but he was jealous and mored to leave the hospital early, because he didn¡¯t want Liberty to visit his ex-husband every day. Grandma May also said that there were a few excellent men who were suitable for Liberty. If he could really let go, Grandma May would introduce a boyfriend to Liberty. Zachary: ¡°Duncan, if you give up on things you haven¡¯t tried before, then you really won¡¯t see any hope.¡± Duncan was silent for a long time, and said, ¡°Zachary, I listen to you, and I will go for N?velDrama.Org content. rehabilitation after I leave the hospital. Zachary, as long as my legs don¡¯t lose feeling, I believe I can still stand up.¡± If he couldn¡¯t do it in one year, or two years, he would stick to it for three to five years, ten years, and one day he would be able to stand up. Of course, for the sake of Liberty, Duncan couldn¡¯t dy it for ten years, after all, they were no longer eighteen or twenty-year-old young people, he and Liberty were both over thirty, and he was older than Liberty. Zachary: ¡°Come on, I believe you can do it!¡± ¡°Do you know the reason for the Brown family¡¯s affairs?¡± Duncan asked about the Brown family¡¯s affairs after being inspired by his friend to regain his confidence. Hank was not dead and he was Sonny¡¯s father. With this identity alone, Hank could get close to Liberty by watching his son. Zachary: ¡°I told Josh that in order to satisfy his wife¡¯s desire to eat melons, Josh had gone to inquire a long time ago, and there should be results soon.¡± After Jessica was arrested, in front of the police, she would definitely say something. The reason for the knife. The Brown family¡¯s bloody case also caused a sensation in thatmunity. Hank divorced Liberty back then, and the wholemunity knew about it. Now that the bloody case happened, everyone was paying attention, and the police would issue a report. With the development of the Inte, Hank¡¯s tragic end would soon spread on the Inte. ¡°You don¡¯t have to worry, no matter whether Hank is dead or alive, I believe my sister will not give him another chance. Brown family regrets now, it is because they were retaliated by meter, and their life was not satisfactory, so they will regret it.¡± Zachary added: ¡°If I didn¡¯t take revenge on them, Hank wouldn¡¯t lose his job, and he and the man surnamed Ye might live happily ever after, so why would the Brown family regret it? My sister also knows it well, she would rather As a single mother, it is impossible to remarry Hank again, you can rest assured.¡± Duncan was a hundred times better than Hank even in a wheelchair now. The two were chatting outside. After Liberty in the ward packed up his things, she thought that Sonny hade to the hospital, so she took Sonny to see Hank. Hank was transferred to the ICU ward, now it was not the time for family members to visit, Sonny could only be hugged by his mother and looked at his father outside the window. After just a few nces, Sonny was carried by Mrs. Brown, who hugged her only grandson and cried bitterly. ¡°Grandma, Dad will be fine, grandma, don¡¯t cry.¡± Sonnyforted Mrs. Brown. Chapter 1784 Chapter 1784 Chapter 1784 Sonny nestled in his grandma¡¯s arms, he knew that his father loved him when he was young, But his father¡¯s love was not as good as his mother¡¯s love, and father would abandon Auntie Jessica because of her stomachache, breaking his trust in him. But his Dad was lying motionless on the hospital bed now, Sonny was very sensible and didn¡¯t say what¡¯s in his heart. ¡°Ring ring ring¡­¡± Liberty¡¯s cell phone rang. It was Serenity who called her. She stepped aside to listen to the phone. Serenity: ¡°Sister, are you still in the hospital?¡± ¡°Well, bring Sonny to see his father, Mr. Lewis is going to be discharged from the hospital, and we¡¯ll go backter.¡± After Duncan returned home from the hospital, Liberty thought she didn¡¯t have to follow him and went to Lewis¡¯s house and continue to take care of him. Duncan¡¯s next step was mainly to do rehabilitation. In her new restaurant, there were too many things waiting for her to do, and she had no time to continue to take care of Duncan. Serenity: ¡°Hank isn¡¯t dead, is he?¡± Liberty: ¡°He¡¯s still alive, but he¡¯s not out of danger. Now he¡¯s in the ICU ward. The doctor said they did their best. The next step is to see Hank¡¯s luck.¡± After Serenity knew about Hank¡¯s situation, She didn¡¯t have any sympathy for this former brother-inw, but she would only ask a few questions if he was the her nephew¡¯s own father. However, even without Sonny, Serenity would still pay attention to this matter, and she felt that this was Hank and Jessica¡¯s retribution. ¡°Jasmine told me the reason. Zachary asked Josh to inquire about the news. He learned the reason for Jessica¡¯s knife from the police. The police are also preparing to report the case. Jessica took advantage of Hank¡¯s lunch break to hide in the room. stabbing Hank with a sharp knife. This is why Hank was seriously injured by Jessica. After Jessica had a miscarriage, she knew she was confinement and she was about to go to jail again. She wanted to have another child with Hank. Hank thought that she had just had a miscarriage and her health was not well, so she politely declined her request. But Jessica felt that Hank disliked her and wanted her to go back to prison, and after the miscarriage, she was used by her mother-inw and Chelsea, and she was under a lot of pressure, and she was full of resentment towards Brown family. She felt that it was Hank who pursued her first. Although she was also at fault, she couldn¡¯t p her with one hand. If Hank hadn¡¯t always spoken ill of her sister in front of her, saying that she had no rtionship with her, she would have divorced her sooner orter. She Coaxed by Hank, she also wants to marry in the city, longing to have a home in the city. Hank has a house, a car, and savings, and is young and promising, which meets her requirements, so she shamelessly intervenes in Hank. It¡¯s not going well now, she still has to go to jail, she feels that she is the only one who has received retribution, everyone is ming her, calling her a b!tch, a v!xen, a poisonous woman. And apart from losing her job, there is no retribution, which is too unfair.¡± Brown family always instigated Hank to divorce her, she said she was afraid that after she returned to prison, Hank would divorce her and marry someone else. She said that she didn¡¯t want to live anyway, so she took Hank to h-e-l-l with her. Why should the fault be med on her? Why should everyone scold her instead of scolding Hank as a sc*mbag? Chelsea will be injured because seeing her brother being stabbed, she rushed to save him, but was stabbed by Jessica.¡± After hearing Jessica¡¯s reason for using the knife to kill, Liberty remained silent for a long time.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 1785 Chapter 1785 Chapter 1785 ¡°Mr. Lewis is arguing to be discharged from the hospital. He has been arguing to be discharged from the hospital a long time ago. The doctor kept persuading him, but today he couldn¡¯t persuade him. I asked the doctor and he said Mr. Lewis can be discharged now. After returning home, rest for a period of time before doing rehabilitation.¡± Liberty said with a little helplessness, ¡°Mr. Lewis¡¯s temper is like the weather in June, and it can change at will.¡± But Liberty could also understand Duncan¡¯s mood. If she had been lying down every day, she would have gone crazy too. ¡°Now there is no need for infusion, and it is not a big problem to go home to rest after leaving the hospital. It is better to go home. He can go out for a walk in a wheelchair every day, rx and breathe fresh air, his mood will be much better and he can recover quickly.¡± Liberty added, ¡°I have packed his things for him. Zachary brought Sonny to the hospital, Sonny said he wanted to see Uncle Duncan, since Sonny came to the hospital, I can¡¯t justify not going to see his father, so I¡¯ll take Sonny to see his father now, and I can only watch a few times outside the ward through the ss window.¡± Serenity had no objection to her sister¡¯s arrangement, she said: ¡°Sister, I¡¯m going back, don¡¯t talk for now, let¡¯s talk about it when I get back.¡± ¡°Okay, drive slowly.¡± Liberty said. After finishing talking with her sister, Liberty turned around and looked at her former iws and son in the distance. The old couple took turns hugging Sonny, their love for their grandson was unprecedented. After a few minutes of silence, Liberty walked towards her former inws. Liberty: ¡°Uncle, Auntie, Sonny doesn¡¯t need you to take care of him now, you go back to N?velDrama.Org owns this text. rest and eat something.¡± Liberty hugged her son from her mother-inw, and was about to take Sonny to pick up Duncan. It¡¯s time to leave the hospital. She tried to persuade the old couple, but Mrs. Brown refused to leave the hospital. She was afraid that if they left, her son would be dered dead. Even though they couldn¡¯t help, they stood watch in the hospital. They could find out right away if something bad happened to Hank. Mrs. Brown: ¡°Liberty, you don¡¯t have to worry about us, we can hold on, Sonny said he is going to go to kindergarten, has he signed up?¡± Most of the summer vacation had passed. Liberty: ¡°He signed up a long time ago, and he will start kindergarten on September 1st.¡± Mrs. Brown nodded and asked where Sonny went to kindergarten. She knew that her grandson went to the best kindergarten in Wiltspoon, which is what she wanted to say, but she didn¡¯t know what to say, so she didn¡¯t. Liberty asked his son to say goodbye to her ex-inws, then put down his son and took him away. Mr. Brown and Mrs. Brown looked at the backs of the mother and son, and Mrs. Brown said: ¡°Even though Sonny has a great kindergarten, Lucas can only go to a kindergarten in a township. Chelsea cried and said that the tuition fee of $5,000 to $6,000 per semester was too high. At the beginning, Hank agreed to give Sonny to Liberty, which was the most correct decision. Can Lucaspare with Sonny? Sonny has an aunt Serenity who married into a wealthy family. And we lost him at the starting line.¡± Mr. Brown: ¡°Don¡¯t sigh, Sonny has always been our grandson, Liberty has cultivated Sonny into a talent, Sonny still calls us grandparents, he is the grandson of our Brown family. ¡° Mrs. Brown thought about it, and stoppedmenting the difference in the treatment of her grandson Lucas and grandson Sonny Chapter 1786 Chapter 1786 Chapter 1786 Knowing that he was discharged from the hospital, his brother and sister-inw put down everything they were doing and rushed to pick him up. Too many people cared about Duncan, and there were bodyguards to take care of him, so Liberty wanted to take care of her affairs. She said to Mrs. Lewis: ¡°Auntie, Mr. Lewis is out of the hospital now. You have a big family and you can take good care of Mr. Lewis. I-I won¡¯t go with them, my new restaurant I just acquired is under renovation, I want to go over and see how the renovation is going.¡± Seeing the tiredness on Liberty¡¯s face, Mrs. Lewis felt a little distressed, and said, ¡°Liberty, it¡¯s fine for Duncan to be taken care of by us. You can go and get busy with your affairs, but don¡¯t be too tired. You have already exhausted.¡± Mrs. Lewis took Liberty¡¯s hand and said grateful words over and over again. Liberty: ¡°Auntie, we all hope that Mr. Lewis will get better. As long as Mr. Lewis gets better, it doesn¡¯t matter if I¡¯m tired. Auntie, then I¡¯ll go first.¡± Mrs. Lewis let go of her hand. Liberty took her son¡¯s little hand, said goodbye to Mrs. Lewis, and left the hospital with Sonny. ¡­¡­ When Serenity returned to the city from her hometown, it was almost dusk, so she went to her sister¡¯s rented house first. Using the key that her sister gave her, she opened the door and went in, and saw Sonny sitting in the hall watching cartoons, she closed the door and shouted: ¡°Sonny.¡± Seeing that it was his aunt, Sonny turned off the TV, get up and run to Serenity. Serenity picked up Sonny and walked around several times. Both the nephew and she smiled happily. N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Liberty came out of the kitchen with two freshly fried dishes, and said with a smile, ¡°Serenity, you came back just in time. I just finished cooking, so go wash your hands and eat.¡± Serenity: ¡°I smelled the fragrance without entering the door, sister, what good dishes did you cook?¡± Serenity put down Sonny, led Sonny into the kitchen to wash his hands, and saw that there were still two dishes that hadn¡¯t been brought out, she washed her hands, then picked up vegetables and ate with chopsticks, and also fed Sonny. Liberty came in and saw Serenity and Soony, and said amusedly: ¡°Can¡¯t you just sit at the table and eat? Serenity, you are married and still look like a child. Let people outside see this side of you; it will be another overwhelming report.¡± As the mistress of the York family, her every move was watched by people, and even a small matter would be infinitely magnified. If it wasn¡¯t for Zachary¡¯s protection of his wife, Serenity wouldn¡¯t know how many open and dark arrows from others he had endured. ¡°Am not I at my sister¡¯s house? I usually wear a mask to behave more or less. In my sister¡¯s house, in front of my sister, what kind of mask should I wear? Even if I eat vegetables with my hands, who knows?¡± Serenity didn¡¯t care. Since knowing that Zachary was the young master of the York family, she seemed to be the same as usual, but in front of others, she had unknowingly put on a mask to behave herself, trying to show her best side to outsiders. Only at her sister¡¯s house could she let go of her defenses, take off her mask, restore her nature, and get a moment of freedom. Liberty went out with the bowls and chopsticks, and asked her: ¡°Did you just arrive? Or did you go to thepany?¡± Serenity: ¡°Elisa was picked up by Fifth Young Master Johnson and Remy for a romantic candlelight dinner during the day, Mr. Bucham rarely socializes now that Jasmine is expecting, and Zachary had social engagements at night, so he is also very busy.¡± Chapter 1787 Chapter 1787 Chapter 1787 People in Wiltspoon liked to drink soup. If there was no soup for every meal, it would always be difficult to swallow. Liberty cooked everyday meals. She guessed that her sister woulde over for dinner, so she made four dishes and one soup. The soup was seaweed egg drop soup. ¡°Sonny, this is your soup, drink it first.¡± After Serenity filled a bowl of soup for her nephew, she poured another bowl for her sister, and finally she served herself. After taking a sip of the soup, she sighed and said in satisfaction: ¡°My sister¡¯s taste is different. At home, the soup made by the chef is also delicious, but I still like to drink the soup made by my sister the most.¡± Libertyughed: ¡°You like to drink sister¡¯s soup, you cane here often.¡± Tired of big fish and meat, Serenity wanted to eat ordinary home-cooked meals. ¡°Sister, Mr. Lewis has been discharged from the hospital, will you continue to take care of him?¡± Serenity asked with concern. Liberty: ¡°I don¡¯t think it needs to be done. His family has a lot of members. If I can take care of him well, I need to look after my restaurant. But tomorrow is my day off, and Sonny and I are going to the park to y. He is getting ready to start kindergarten.¡± Serenity: ¡°You¡¯re right, you want to rest tomorrow too, instead of going to the park, let¡¯s go back to the Wildridge Manor, which is much more fun than the park.¡± Liberty had no objection. The Wildridge Manor was built more beautifully than the park, and it also had a yground for children. Sonny was too happy every time he went to Wildridge Manor. Serenity: ¡°Sister, let¡¯s go shoppingter, I¡¯ll buy you some small gifts to take back.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Liberty readily agreed. The two sisters were very busy now, and it had been a long time since they went N?velDrama.Org owns this text. shopping together. After dinner, they went shopping again. At 9 o¡¯clock in the evening, Serenity returned to the vi on the top of the mountain with the gift of the car. Zachary would be home before 9:30, and he would get angry again if he went home first and didn¡¯t see Serenity there. He wanted to wake up every morning, open his eyes, and see his beloved wife. He also wanted toe home at night and see his beloved wife waiting for him at home under the moonlight. Zachary doted on Serenity, why didn¡¯t Serenity dote on Zachary. Almost back to the vi, the driver slowed down the speed, stopped the car not long after, turned to Serenity and said, ¡°Eldest young mistress, there is a car parked sideways at the entrance of the vi, blocking the way.¡± Hearing this, leaning on the car Serenity, who was sitting on the back of the chair, sat up straight and looked forward. She really saw a red sports car parked at the door of her house. His sports car was parked sideways, just blocking the gate of the vi. The driver honked the horn. The two bodyguards who followed Serenity got out of the car, walked forward, and saw someone on the sports car. The people in the sports car opened the door and got out of the car before the bodyguards approached. It¡¯s a strange woman. She was wearing a long red dress and a wavy wind. She got off the red sports car like a ball of fire. ¡°Miss, who are you looking for? Please move the car first, you can¡¯t park like this here, it¡¯s blocking our youngdy¡¯s car.¡± Chapter 1788 Chapter 1788 Chapter 1788 The woman leaned on the car, and then took out a pack of cigarettes from her bag. She took out two cigarettes and handed them to the two bodyguards, who refused the cigarettes she handed over. The woman didn¡¯t care, she lit a cigarette, put the bag back on the car, leaned against the car again, and while breathing, she said to the bodyguard: ¡°I¡¯m here to find your eldest young mistress. Go and tell Serenity that I invited her out for supper and I want to talk to her.¡± The bodyguard: ¡°Miss, what¡¯s your surname?¡± The woman was young and beautiful, and she asked to see Eldest Mistress by name, and the bodyguard guessed that this woman was known by eldest Mistress, otherwise she wouldn¡¯t havee to talk to her. ¡°My surname is Dawson.¡± She was Analia Dawson. Analia fell in love with Zachary at first sight, but after being scolded by his father, she seemed to wake up and did not appear in front of Zachary for a long time. But after returning home, she found that she could never forget Zachary. N?velDrama.Org content. Mr. Dawson said that during the period of cooperation between Dawson Group and York Corporation, Analia was not allowed to disturb Zachary and his wife, otherwise he would give up her as the sessor and support her cousin to be the sessor instead. It had to be said that Analia did not dare to make any mistakes during this period of time due to his father¡¯s threat. In the past two days, his father went abroad on a business trip, and it would take several months toe back. Thepany was handed over to her and the eldest brother to be jointly responsible. Without her father¡¯s suppression at home, Analia couldn¡¯t bear the pain of lovesickness, and came to Wiltspoon alone, but she didn¡¯t dare to go to the York Corporation to find Zachary, and knew that she would never see Zachary when she went, so she came here to see Serenity. She wanted topete with Serenity face to face, to see how Serenity couldpare to her, to be blessed with Zachary¡¯s affection. The vi area was very strictly controlled. Analia was not allowed toe in. It was an owner here who knew that she was here to visit the youngdy of the York family and kindly brought Analia in. In fact, that person was just uneasy and kind. People who came to visit the York family¡¯s youngdy, even if they would be blocked outside the vi area by security, as long as they contacted the York family¡¯s housekeeper, the housekeeper arranged for someone toe out, and visitors could still enter the vi area. Analia was blocked outside, and no one from the York family came to lead her in, which meant that this was an uninvited guest and was not wee. That person seemed to have good intentions, but in fact she was afraid that the world would not be chaotic, and wanted to see Zachary and his wife have a good show. It seemed that the love between Zachary and his wife had attracted the jealousy and hatred of many people. ¡°Miss Dawson, wait a moment.¡± A bodyguard walked back to Serenity¡¯s car, and said respectfully to Serenity in the car: ¡°Miss, that car belongs to Miss Dawson, and Miss Dawson said that she wants to talk to you. Let¡¯s talk.¡± Dawson? Serenity immediately thought of the daughter of the Dawson family who sent bouquets of flowers, new clothes and ties to her man. Facing the sudden appearance of a rival in love, Serenity was neither in a hurry nor jealous, she got out of the car and walked towards Analia. Analia saw Serenity approaching, still leaning on the car, smoking a cigarette, looking cool. ¡°Miss Dawson, are you looking for me?¡± Serenity stood in front of Analia, using the streetlight at the door to examine her sudden rival in love. Last time, she didn¡¯t even meet her rival in love, so she didn¡¯t know what Analia looked like, but when she saw her tonight, she was a beauty, the kind who was so mboyant. It¡¯s normal for Zachary to think that only Zachary was worthy of her. Serenity dared to say that those daughters who loved Zachary would think like Analia that she, Serenity, was not good enough for Zachary, and only those daughters who came from rich families were worthy of Zachary. In Analia¡¯s eyes, Serenity might not even be worthy of carrying Zachary¡¯s shoes. Chapter 1789 Chapter 1789 Chapter 1789 Everyone in Wiltspoon now knew that Serenity was the eldest mistress of the York family, but not many people could remember Serenity¡¯s appearance. She rarely showed her face in front of the media, and Zachary protected her very well. Every time she was on the trending search, she would be taken down soon. Zachary knew that his beloved wife still preferred a peaceful life. Because of him, she had to show her face in public often, but he could protect her from being affected too much, so he tried his best to protect her from being affected. Analia searched for Serenity¡¯s photos on the Inte, and found that she could only find some blurred or no frontal photos. At this moment, she could truly appreciate the good looks of Serenity in person. Analia was also very beautiful. The moment she saw Serenity in person, she had to admit that Serenity¡¯s appearance was very good, and she was not inferior to her. In addition, she was proud of her high temperament, which couldn¡¯t suppress Serenity. Serenity was born with a good temperament. She had been the eldest mistress of the York family for nearly a year. In various activities, her natural good temperament became more apparent. ¡°You are Serenity?¡± Analia asked. Serenity asked her back: ¡°Ms. Dawson, you want to see me, but you don¡¯t know what I look like?¡± Analia: ¡°I have seen your photo, but the photo is very blurry and I can¡¯t see clearly. Miss, you¡¯re much prettier than the photo.¡± Serenity smiled, ¡°Thank you, Ms. Dawson, for yourpliment. Ms. Dawson, you¡¯er also very beautiful. But Ms. Dawson, I don¡¯t know why you want me?¡± Analia was silent for a while, probably wondering whether to stick to her own ideas, N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. after struggling for a while, Analia was still unwilling to give up. She grew up so big, she had seen countless men, only Zachary hit her heart directly, she liked Zachary. So what if Serenity was young and beautiful? So what if it smelled good? Her family background was wed, and she had been married to Zachary for so long, and her stomach had not moved. Many people privately said that Serenity could not have children. Zachary responded to this question publicly, saying that he thought about the world of two people and didn¡¯t want to have children too soon. It was Zachary¡¯s defense of Serenity, not Zachary¡¯s heartfelt words. It is said that both the York family and Zachary himself were looking forward to Serenity¡¯s pregnancy. ¡°Miss Hunt, is it convenient for you now? I want to treat you to dinner and chat.¡± Analia said with a smile, ¡± It¡¯s just me and you.¡± She didn¡¯t like seeing Serenity with bodyguards. A country girl, her parents died, she was brought up by her older sister, but once she turned over, she was driven in and out of a luxury car, picked up by a driver, followed by a bodyguard, it really made people jealous. Serenity looked at the women¡¯s wristwatch she was wearing. Naturally, this watch was also given by her man, and the watch that Zachary was wearing was a couple¡¯s watch. ¡°Ms. Dawson, my husband will be back soon. If he doesn¡¯t see me at home, he will be anxious. Look, can you make a long story short here? Or can you change the time?¡± Analia¡¯s beautiful eyes shed. She asked: ¡°Did Mr. York return home so early?¡± York¡¯s family was led by Zachary. It was reasonable to assume that he was overworked and couldn¡¯t get home untilte at night. Chapter 1790 Chapter 1790 Chapter 1790 Analia usually stayed with her father, and both father and daughter were often busy until late at night before returning home, even on weekends. A happy and sweet smile hung on Serenity¡¯s face, and she said: ¡°Our Mr. York is now a model husband. As long as I don¡¯t apany him, he will be home at around 9:30 every night. He said that no matter how important work is, they are not as important as me, and he is reluctant to let me wait for him to go home untilte at night, and he also wants to get off work early and go home to be with me.¡± Serenity¡¯s smile made Analia feel dazzling, and after listening to Serenity¡¯s loving words, Analia¡¯s heart was on fire, and wanted to spew out a big fire and burn Serenity to ashes. Fortunately, she walked around the business world with her father, she was a little more stable, and didn¡¯t vent the anger in her heart, or even show it in the slightest. Analia: ¡°Miss Hunt and Mr. York have such a good rtionship.¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s excellent. My husband is too nice to me. If he doesn¡¯t take care of me in the future, I won¡¯t be able to take it. But he said he would take care of me for the rest of his life, and if he had another life, he would take care of me there, too. His sweet talk is so sweet that it makes sense that everyone likes to hear it. However, he has always said what he means, and I think he will do what he says.¡± Analia was so jealous that he was going crazy. She kept scolding Serenity in her heart for showing affection to stimte her on purpose, and it was also a hint to her that Zachary would not change his mind, let her die. Men, especially rich and powerful men, are cats. How can a cat not steal? She didn¡¯t believe that Zachary could guard Serenity for a lifetime without stealing! Suppressing the jealousy in her heart, Analia also said with a smile: ¡°Everyone likes to N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. hear sweet words, but sweet words are often deceptive and cannot be trusted. Since Miss Hunt, you¡¯re not free now, I will ask you to chat another day.¡± ¡°Ms. Hunt, I really want to friend with you, I hope we can be friends, after all, Dawson Group and York Corporation are cooperating on big projects, and we have contacts from time to time.¡± Serenity said: ¡°My requirements for making friends are rtively high and I don¡¯t care about family background, but I really care about character, if character is not good, no matter how noble the family background is, I don¡¯t want to be friends with him.¡± Analia¡¯s face became a little cold. She felt that Serenity¡¯s words imply that she was not good at character and was not worthy of being a friend of her. ¡°That¡¯s right, character is the most important thing.¡± Even though Analia hated her very much in her heart, she didn¡¯t show it on the outside and didn¡¯t turn her back on her. Even though she thought Serenity was talking about her, Serenity didn¡¯t call her by name. That¡¯s the check-in. Unexpectedly, she had a strong mouth and could speak well! ¡°Miss Hunt, can you give me your contact information, I will ask you out for a cup of coffee another day.¡± Serenity generously told Analia her mobile phone number. Even Analia dared toe to her door. Sooner orter, the two of them had to confront each other. There was no need for her to shrink back and be afraid. She generously gave Analia her mobile phone number and waited for her rival to attack again. Serenity was never afraid of soldiersing to block, watering and soil flooding. Even if there wasn¡¯t Analia, there would still be other great people who would tell Serenity that Mr. York was too good. Men or women, wherever they went, they were the center of attention, like a big ma that pulled in a lot of people. The flowers don¡¯t want to attract bees and butterflies, but the flowers bloom so beautifully, those crazy bees, waves and butterfliese to the door by themselves, entangled endlessly, can anyone me the flowers for being too beautiful? Serenity wouldn¡¯t me her husband for being too good; rather, she would feel very lucky that such a good man only liked her. The more potential love rivals appeared, the more it demonstrated how good Zachary was and how she was naturally gifted. Chapter 1791 Chapter 1791 Chapter 1791 Analia just hung up the phone and said with a smile: ¡°Miss Hunt, I¡¯ll go first and make an appointment another day.¡± Serenity: ¡°Goodbye.¡± Serenity watched Analia get into the car, and when Analia waved to her, she said something: ¡°When Ms. Dawsones over next time, please park your car in the parking space at the door, and don¡¯t leave it indiscriminately. It¡¯s blocking my car tonight. I have a good temper and a strong heart. I won¡¯t argue with Ms. Dawson, if it blocks my Mr. York¡¯s road, Ms. Dawson¡¯s sports car will be scrapped.¡± Analia: ¡°¡­It¡¯s my fault, I¡¯ll remember it, I¡¯m sorry.¡± Serenity smiled: ¡°Ms. Dawson, I said that I have a good temper and a strong tolerance, and I won¡¯t get angry just because you stop and park randomly. Ms. Dawson, you walk slowly, and I won¡¯t see you off.¡± Analia waved her hand casually and drove away. Watching the rival¡¯s car go away, the smile on Serenity¡¯s face narrowed, and she looked at Sam who had juste out of the vi. ¡°Young Mistress, what happened?¡± Sam had just received the news and came out to find out. After Analia came, she didn¡¯t disturb the people in the house, she just waited silently in the car for Serenity toe back. Serenity: ¡°It¡¯s nothing, the suitor of your young master came to the house, and the car parked in the parking space without knowing it, and parked sideways at the door, blocking my way. Sam, can we go to the security guard to call the surveince camera to see look? Ms. Dawson doesn¡¯t have an ess card, and it¡¯s impossible for you to bring her in. How did shee in?¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Serenity acted generously in front of her rivals, and made Analia angry. In fact, she was very stingy. Her man, she would not share with other women. How did her love rival get in? She wanted to find out who stabbed her in the back, so she couldn¡¯t see her well. In the future, she would not allow Analia toe here again, unless¡­ Zachary epted Analia and brought Analia in, otherwise she would not allow Analia to appear here again. This was her home! Her home did not allow outsiders to invade! ¡°Eldest young mistress, I¡¯ll go to the security room at the gate of the vi area to have a look.¡± Sam heard that it was the young master¡¯s admirer who came to the door, and immediately remembered the bouquet of flowers and a few new sets of clothesst time. He thought that the admirer had already been killed by the young master, but he didn¡¯t expect to reappear after being quiet for a while. It seemed that she was unwilling to give up. The eldest and young masters had eldest young mistress, and those women were still desperate, rushing towards them like moths to a me, so they were not afraid of being burned to nothing. Sam was firmly on the side of the young mistress. Sam turned his head and went back to the vi. Soon, he came out on an electric bike and went straight to the security room at the entrance of the vi area. Serenity asked the driver to drive the car into the vi, and she walked into the house. After the driver parked the car, he got out of the car and stood with the bodyguard, watching Serenity disappear into the house. The driver: ¡°Brother Sam, will the eldest young mistress anger the eldest young master?¡± Chapter 1792 Chapter 1792 Sam thought for a while, and said: ¡°I have been with the young mistress to protect her for several months, and I know the young mistress fairly well. I don¡¯t think she will offend the young master. Ms. Dawson posted it. What did the young mistress me the young master for?¡± ¡°That¡¯s good, what I¡¯m most afraid of is that the young mistress gets angry and doesn¡¯t talk to the young master, then we will be out of luck.¡± When Zachary got angry, it made it hard for everyone. But the first to suffer were those who could often see Zachary. Because the driver often drove Serenity, he was already a person who could often see Zachary, so it was normal for him to be worried. After Serenity entered the room, she sat down on the sofa, and within a few minutes, she heard movement outside, knowing that it was Zachary who had returned. Zachary¡¯s car didn¡¯t stop until it drove directly to the door of the main house. Serenity sat still on the sofa, not as usual, whenever she heard the sound of the car, she would go out to greet him. Zachary got out of the car with a few bags containing new clothes from a well-known brand, which he presented to Serenity. Serenity¡¯s status and attention were at an alltime high at this point. She dressed up, went out for a fewps, or attended a banquet, which was a mobile advertisement. In the past, only male brands approached Zachary. When Zachary got married, female brands flocked to him. After Zachary got off the car, he didn¡¯t see his beloved wifeing out to greet him, and he didn¡¯t even see Sam, so he felt abnormal. Instead of entering the house in a hurry, he called Sam and asked him: ¡°What happened at home before I came back? Is your young mistress in a bad mood?¡± Sam replied softly: ¡°Master, Please enter the room and ask the young mistress; this is a private matter between the young master and the young mistress; we are not good at conversing. Young master, we can take the day off. Let us go first, Young Master, and have a good night.¡± Sam quickly slipped away. And the other bodyguard and driver were also smart enough to withdraw before Sam slipped away. Sam said it was something. Zachary looked at Jim and the others. Jim said: ¡°Young master, we have been following you, and we don¡¯t know what you don¡¯t know.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t say anything, he just nced at them, and didn¡¯t ask them, so he didn¡¯t need to be so quick. He strode into the house with several bags. As soon as he entered the room, he yelled: ¡°Honey, I¡¯m back.¡± Serenity responded to him: ¡°I heard the movement a long time ago and knew you were back. What did you buy for me?¡± With the bag in his hand, he bought things for her, and what he needed was for her to buy things for him. ¡°A brand of women¡¯s clothing has released new products. Their general manager personally sent you a few sets of new products. I brought them back for you. You can see if you like them.¡± Zachary walked over, sat down next to his wife, and handed several bags to her. Serenity said helplessly: ¡°I already have a lot of new products from brands in my cloakroom, and I can¡¯t even wear them.¡± He gave her so many clothes that she could be a fashion model. Zachary put his arms around her shoulders and said with a smile: ¡°Don¡¯t force yourself to wear something if you don¡¯t like it; instead, wear it if you do.¡± Taking out those new sets of clothes to have a look, Serenity took a fancy to two sets N?velDrama.Org content. and said, ¡°I like these two sets of clothes, and I will wear them the next time I go to an event with you. Send it to me first when ites out on the market, and always give others the benefit of the doubt.¡± Zachary: ¡°If you want to wear it, go ahead; if not, don¡¯t worry about how it makes them look. You are being used as advertising, and you are dressed in their attire. Attend the event, and they will explode if they introduce new products.¡± Chapter 1793 Chapter 1793 Serenity looked at him and asked back, ¡°Why do you think so?¡± ¡°When I return, you typicallye out of the house as soon as you hear the car enter the vi, stand in front of it, and wait for me to get out while grinning. But Sam came out, and Sam didn¡¯te out tonight. What happened? Are you angry with me? Zachary asked softly: ¡°Serenity, tell me, did I do something wrong?¡± Serenity didn¡¯t expect that because she didn¡¯t wee him out, he guessed that something was wrong. Seeing that he was cautious, she seemed worried that he would anger her. Always worried that she would be angry, worried that she would leave him in a fit of anger. She put down her clothes, grabbed his face, kissed him on the lips, and said, ¡°It¡¯s not your fault, you didn¡¯t do anything wrong, and I wasn¡¯t angry. When you came back, I was just thinking about something. I was too involved in thinking, so I didn¡¯t go out to pick you up.¡± Serenity took the initiative to lean into his arms, and put her arms around his waist, ¡°Zachary, you are my man and only belong to me. If anyone else wants to love you, I won¡¯t let them. Ms. Dawson, who likes you, is back. She wants to meet up with me and talk. I see it¡¯s gettingte. I know that you¡¯ll be back soon, so I tell her no. When I¡¯m free, let¡¯s talk about it.¡± Zachary heard Analia, his face darkened. Serenity: ¡°Don¡¯t be angry either.¡± Serenity, who knew him well, left his embrace, looked up at him, and gently touched his handsome face with his hands. It was normal for analia to fall instantly in love with him! ¡°You are so good, it¡¯s normal for someone to like you, and I¡¯m not afraid that a rival in love will appear from time to time, anyway, I believe your feelings for me will not change. If youe to a rival in love, I will destroy one, and you will have a pair. I will destroy a pair, and I will not hand you over to others, and I will not share your love with others.¡± Zachary: ¡°Honey, Ms. Dawson¡¯s treatment of you is a one-off for a lifetime. It¡¯s hard for her to let go of her liking for you. Maybe Mr. Dawson can control her for a while, but not for the rest of her life.¡± Serenity: ¡°Leave this matter to me, and umte some experience in dealing with rivals. In the days toe, there will definitely be more admirers of yours. If I have no experience in fighting the enemy, I will be easily defeated.¡± Zachary said: ¡°I have everything.¡± Serenity smiled, ¡°You don¡¯t need anything else; as long as you continue to be kind to me and support me, my happiness and your loyalty will be enough to drive away those admirers and force them to back down despite challenges.¡± ¡°If they never give up and conspire behind the scenes, our main thing is to seize the evidence, and if there is evidence, we can do whatever we want. The third person who destroys other people¡¯s marriages will always be taught a lesson.¡± Having said that, Serenity thought of Jessica, and she said to Zachary: ¡°You knew about that sc*mbag Hank and Jessica.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Chapter 1794 Chapter 1794 There are very few usations against Hank, in fact, the two of them should me Hank more. Young and beautiful girls still want to pursue him, but he can¡¯t keep his heart. ¡°Of course, Jessica is also at fault, she canpletely reject Hank, she can even resign and stay away from Hank, but she doesn¡¯t enjoy Hank. All the beauty that Hank brought to her gave birth to her ambition to rece my sister as Hank¡¯s wife. Now that she has ended up like this, she is not worthy of sympathy, and Hank is also not worthy of sympathy. If it is not for Sonny¡¯s Dad, if he¡¯s dead, my sister won¡¯t go back and look at him. Jessica just thinks that everyone mes her, and the retribution falls on her. She thinks N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. it¡¯s unfair, and she probably lost it because of the torture of the Brown family. When she was disheartened, she shed at Hank who she thought would bring her happiness, just like she told the police, she would drag Hank to h-e-l-l with her!¡± After speaking, Serenity hugged Zachary and kissed him a few times and said, ¡°Thank you, Zachary. My sister and I can see Hank and Jessica suffer retribution and end up going to h-e-l-l together today because of your help.¡± Neither Hank nor Jessica would lose their jobs. They were still managers in the company. They were powerful and have high ie in thepany. The life between him and Jessica would only get better and better. But the Brown family would not treat Jessica like they did now, they would only think that Hank was right to divorce, and would only show off in front of Liberty. Might be Liberty couldn¡¯t even fight for the custody of Sonny, and it¡¯s hard for her to share the property after marriage. Liberty was particrly partial to her brother-inw Zachary, and often made Serenity jealous, and felt that her sister was partial. In fact, Liberty was very grateful for this brother-inw¡¯s help. Another point is that, as a natal family, she treated her brother-iw well and hoped that her brother-inw could be nicer to her sister. ¡°We are husband and wife, and your business is mine. I definitely can¡¯t watch our sister being bullied.¡± Zachary hugged her tightly, ¡°That¡¯s probably why Analia came here, she just didn¡¯t cry when she didn¡¯t see the coffin.¡± Serenity: ¡°It¡¯s no wonder, I don¡¯t know how many people are envious of me, sometimes, I worry that I¡¯m living in a dream, waking up Back to reality. I never dreamed that one day I would be the eldest mistress of your York family.¡± At the beginning, she was a little stupid, and the surname York was rare, so she didn¡¯t even associate her with the richest man of York¡¯s family. The main reason was that she felt that Zachary and her were people from two worlds, and it was impossible for them to have any intersection in eight lifetimes. She never thought that she was cheated by his grandma, and was also cheated by him. ¡°I¡¯m also afraid it¡¯s a dream.¡± Zachary tightened his arms and hugged her even tighter, for fear that if he let go, she would disappear out of thin air Chapter 1795 Chapter 1795 Back in the room, Serenity struggled to get off the ground, then turned around and closed the door, then turned to look at him, affectionately, ¡°Husband, I will take the lead tonight.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± Zachary was willing to apany her. He just liked her enthusiastic response, which made him more and more addicted to her. This kind of addiction was a lifetime addiction, and he only loved her in his life. No matter how beautiful the flowers outside were, no matter how he look at them, they were not as good as the flowers he carefully cultivated to bloom beautifully only for him. The couple here were enthusiastic and unrestrained, and Analia over there returned to the vi her family bought in Wiltspoon, and unexpectedly saw her eldest cousin brother, Kingston waiting for her in the vi. Analia frowned when she saw the elder brother, and asked the other party: ¡°It¡¯s sote, Brother Kingston, why did youe to Wiltspoon?¡± Kingston: ¡°You sneaked to Wiltspoon without telling second uncle, so he send me to find you.¡± ¡°This is my freedom. Brother, You don¡¯t care about it, don¡¯t use my dad to oppress me, pretend I don¡¯t know what you really want my father to be angry with me and kick me out of thepany, and you two can take over the Dawson Group.¡± ¡°Brother Kingston, let me tell you, the Dawson Group is my father¡¯s property, The shares in the hands of my father and third uncle are all for the sake of my brothers, and I will give them a little share so that they can share some share bonuses every year and spend their old age in peace. My father has me as his own daughter, and all his property is inherited by me. You don¡¯t want to carve up and upy everything that belongs to me. My father values family affection. After you graduate from university, you will arrange jobs for you. You should N?velDrama.Org owns this text. be grateful to Dad, but you think the rest is ungrateful and a white-eyed wolf.¡± Kingston was scolded by Analia so that his face was gloomy, red and ck at times. The Dawson Group was indeed Mr. Dawson¡¯s personal property, but because Mr. Dawson¡¯s children were weak, only his daughter Analia.., so Mr. Dawson would bring his brothers and nephews together, and also share a little bit of shares with the brothers, but the nephews had no shares. Kingston and other cousins entered second uncle¡¯spany to work, and they all started from the bottom. At the beginning, no one knew that they were the nephews of the president. They climbed to today¡¯s position by virtue of their ability Only then did everyone know that they were the boss¡¯s family members. Mr. Dawson had a strong family property, a hugepany, and all thepanies that cooperate with the Dawson Group were big groups. With such a big piece of fat, who in the Dawson family would not like it? Kingston was the most capable, and deep in his heart he also wanted to be the master of Dawson¡¯s group. But the second uncle had a daughter, Analia who was trained by him. She had established a firm foothold in thepany, and it was difficult for them to rece Analia, unless Analiamitted a serious crime and angered the second uncle. Only in the future would the sessor be reced. ¡°Analia, the second uncle told me that I would watch over you and not let youe to Wiltspoon. I promised that the second uncle would be optimistic about you. What do you say you came to Wiltspoon suddenly? Ourpany cooperates with Yorks¡¯s project, and we don¡¯t need you follow.¡± Kingston actually didn¡¯t understand why his second uncle told him to take good care of Analia and not let Analiae to Wiltspoon, and as soon as Analia came to Wiltspoon, let him chase him immediately and take Analia back. After receiving the news, knowing that Analia took a ne to Wiltspoon in the evening, Kingston immediately arranged the work at hand and booked a flight ticket temporarily. Thinking of taking his cousin Analia with him. Unexpectedly, the cousin said this to Kingston, making him very embarrassed, but there was a fire burning in his heart. Although Analia was the only a daughter of Kingston¡¯s second uncle. ording to what his father said, Analia would marry someone in the future. If Dawson¡¯s family¡¯s property is really handed over to Analia, it is tantamount to handing over Dawson¡¯s family to outsiders. Chapter 1796 Chapter 1796 ¡°I can go wherever I like. You don¡¯t need to worry about it. Ie to meet friends, can¡¯t I come to travel? Brother, if youe to take me back, I advise you not to meddle in your own business.¡± Analia said, and The bag was thrown by her on the sofa, and then she sat down on the sofa, ordering the maid: ¡°Go, pour me a ss of water, I¡¯m thirsty.¡± The maid hurriedly poured a ss of warm water for her. Kingston had been waiting for quite a while, and the maid had already served her tea and snacks. He also returned to the sofa and sat down, softened his tone, and said to Analia: ¡°Analia, you can misunderstand elder brother however you want, but elder brother believes that second uncle did that for your own good, and elder brother is also for your own good.¡± Knowing why the second uncle didn¡¯t let Analiae to Wiltspoon, the second uncle must have done that for Analia¡¯s good. The second uncle had only one child, Analia, and he loved Analia like a treasure. He was so spoiled, when did he force Analia? Kingston guessed that his cousin might have caused trouble in Wiltspoon, so the second uncle didn¡¯t let Analiae to Wiltspoon again. ¡°Analia, where did you go just now? Who is your friend? You don¡¯t know anyone here.¡± After Analia drank a cup of warm water, she didn¡¯t want to quarrel with Kingston. This big brother was deeply relied on by his father. Originally, Analia and Kingston had a good rtionship, but when her father threatened herst time, saying that he could let Kingston take over the Dawson family, Analia began to target Kingston, regarding Kingston as her strongest opponent. ¡°In two days, I¡¯ll be back. Brother, please treat me as if I¡¯m on vacation; I¡¯m really just here to hang out with my buddies and won¡¯t do anything harmful.¡± Analia pleaded with Kingston to assist her in keeping her visit to Wiltspoon a secret. ¡°Analia, the hands and eyes of the second uncle are up to the sky. Someone will tell the second uncle if I don¡¯t tell him myself. You should go back with me now and clean up. If that happens, I won¡¯t go with you to Wiltspoon. What do you have in mind?¡± Kingston was also very careful, mostly because he was afraid Analia would cause a big ident that would affect the Dawson Group, which he wanted to take over and inherit. ¡°Brother! Are you going to spy on me?¡± Analia got angry and yelled at Kingston again. ¡°I¡¯m not spying on you. I¡¯m watching you for my second uncle. Analia, I¡¯m not stupid. You must have caused trouble in Wiltspoon, otherwise my second uncle will not prohibit you froming to Wiltspoon. No matter how much you hate me, I can¡¯t let you mess around.¡± Analia¡¯s face was dark. She came to Wiltspoon quietly, how could Kingston know about it? If she didn¡¯t listen to Kingston, Kingston would tell her father, and it would be very bad for her if her father got angry.N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Chapter 1797 Chapter 1797 Kingston: ¡°Who are you inviting to dinner? I will go with you, and we will go back together tomorrow night.¡± Analia: ¡°Brother, you don¡¯t know her well, so she will feel very unnatural if you go with her.¡± Kingston said: ¡°We should talk to each other and get to know each other. In short, if you don¡¯t go back with me tonight, I¡¯ll be watching your every move in Wiltspoon, no matter who you¡¯re going to meet.¡± Analia: ¡°It¡¯s sote, it¡¯s hard to buy a ne ticket.¡± Kingston said: ¡°I rented a private jet with my friend, and the private jet is already on its way. We will arrive in Wiltspoon soon, and we will take a private ne back.¡± ¡°Have you arranged everything? Did you tell my dad?¡± Analia was very angry about Kingston¡¯s arrangement, but there was nothing she could do. In this matter, her father would rather believe Kingston than her. Kingston said: ¡°I¡¯m justpleting the task that my second uncle gave me.¡± Analia was so angry that she could only leave Wiltspoon with Kingston. Serenity anticipated that her rival in love would approach her the following day to discuss moving her husband, but the rival in love left Wiltspoon overnight, and her small life went on as usual. ¡­ Jensburg Hotel. Hayden walked out of the Jensburg Hotel with bodyguards around him. At the front door of the hotel, he saw a bunch of red flowers. A beautiful girl in a long white dress stood in front of the big bunch of flowers. She had pretty features and long, soft hair. She stood in front of a big bouquet of flowers and held it in her hands. The bunch of flowers was a big red heart made up of many red roses. It was beautiful N?velDrama.Org owns this text. whether you looked at it up close or from far away. There were many onlookers. Hayden noticed that there were still a few entertainment journalists present, and they were holding up their cameras to snap photos of her and the girl. The onlookers all looked at him. ¡°Master Queen.¡± The girl called Hayden and came with a bouquet in her arms. The pair of sky-high hats under her feet made Hayden frown, worried that she would fall when she walked. Hayden didn¡¯t understand that this girl was already tall, why did she still dress so tall? Thinking of the women around her wearing high heels every day, Hayden didn¡¯t want to regain the woman status. Being a man made her feel chic and at ease. That is, she often have to face the confession of these nympho women. Hayden just nced at the other party, and walked towards her car with the bodyguards. ¡°Mr. Queen.¡± Seeing that Hayden was about to leave, the woman hurried over. Chapter 1798 Chapter 1798 Thinking of the public, Hayden recognized her again. He once praised her for being a good filmmaker. She was such a delicate beauty who threw herself into his arms. Hayden wouldn¡¯t push her away, would he? This woman was a new popr actress in Jensburg. Hugh, who was Hayden¡¯s twin brother, admired this actress very much. During the filming period of the actress, Hugh wanted to visit the set, but he couldn¡¯t spare the time, so he asked his sister Hayden to go instead of him. Hayden was a cold person in front of outsiders, but she still loved her twin brother very much. She was so busy with work, and at her brother¡¯s repeated requests, she agreed once, went to visit a ss, watched the other y, and said something The other party¡¯s filming is good. She never thought that once she visited a ss, there would be a scandal, and entertainment reporters were reporting that Mr. Queen of the Queen Enterprise and the young master of the Queen family liked this actress. The actress fell in love with Hayden at first sight. She knew that it was a false report, but she didn¡¯t rify it. She wanted to raise her status by spreading rumors with Hayden. Most of the actresses in the entertainment circle aim to marry into wealthy families. She was no exception. The Queens were one of the wealthiest families in Jensburg. If they could marry into the Queen family, they would never have to worry about food or clothes and would live in glory and wealth for the rest of their lives. The main reason was that Mr. Queen was young, handsome and rich. He was the head of the Queen Enterprise. His father, Mr. Donald Queen basically didn¡¯t care about things. Mr. Queen was almost everything in the Queen Enterprise. Young women in Jensburg, as long as they had met Mr. Queen, which one would not regard Mr. Queen as the lover of their dreams? Hayden continued walking, not caring what happened to the actress who rushed over. The actress also threw herself into someone¡¯s arms as she wished, and the other party responded quickly to support her, preventing her from kissing the ground. She thought that she had fulfilled her wish and threw herself into the arms of Mr. Queen, with a look of shock, she clung to Mr. Queen¡¯s arms and did not want to move. ¡°Ms. Lia, are you okay?¡± A deep voice sounded, but Ms. Lia didn¡¯t sound like Mr. Queen¡¯s, but a stranger¡¯s. She raised her head abruptly, and met an unfamiliar face, which was not as handsome as Mr. Queen, but a face full of beards. This, this was a bodyguard next to Mr. Queen, right? She remembered that the bodyguard next to Mr. Queen had a beard, and everyone called him Hunter. Lia was so frightened that she quickly stood up straight, and said repeatedly: ¡°I¡¯m sorry, I tripped and didn¡¯t hurt you? I¡¯m so sorry.¡± Hunter said tly: ¡°I¡¯m good. Ms. Lia, be cautious since it will look bad if no one is there to assist you the next time.¡± Lia¡¯s face turned red, and she was very embarrassed, but fortunately she was an actress, and soon recovered, and apologized to Hunter again. Seeing Hayden walking away, Lia quickly chased after her with the squeezed bouquet in her arms. She sessfully stopped Hayden, but her confession was rejected by Hayden. Hayden told her very honestly: ¡°Ms. Lia, My brother asked me to visit the ss at that time. I don¡¯t have any feelings for you. Thank you very much, and please do not disturb me again.¡± Hayden didn¡¯t even let Ms. Lia approach her, and a bodyguard kept Ms. Lia two meters away from her. ¡°Ms. Lia, remember to clean up those flowerster, so as not to increase the workload of the hotel cleaningdy.¡± As she said, Hayden gracefully got into her luxury car. A bodyguard assisted her in closing the car door, and the bodyguards swiftly returned to the bodyguard car, and Hayden¡¯s luxury car drove away from the Jensburg Hotel under the escort of the bodyguard car within a few minutes. Leaving Lia standing there like a fool. Lia confessed to Mr. Queen several times. Formerly, she was the only one and did not cause such a stir. She mustered the resolve to make a public confession this time. She also arranged arge bouquet of flowers and revealed it. The news spread and gained media attention, but Mr. Queen still rejected it.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Chapter 1799 Chapter 1799 After her younger brother answered the phone, she said coldly: ¡°Hugh, tell Ms. Lia that if she pesters me again, I will block her!¡± Hugh was startled, and said, ¡°Brother, Ms. Lia just likes you, confessed to you a little more times, and didn¡¯t make a big mistake, so you don¡¯t have to block her, right? It¡¯s not easy for a little girl to be popr, and she has suffered a lot. Her dream is over, She is only twenty-three years old, she is very young, and her star path is still long.¡± Hugh was asked by her sister to call him big brother, but she got used to it, regardless of her predecessors, her elder brother was older and her younger brother was short. Mrs. Queen was extremely helpless. She used to correct her son¡¯s address, but she didn¡¯t bother to correct it anymore. Outsiders, no one seemed to know that Mrs. Queen gave birth to twins 28 years ago. Everyone thought Mrs. Queen had twins. Even many individuals who were close acquaintances with the Queen family were unaware that Hayden was a woman because she had been disguising herself as a woman since she was a child. Hayden: ¡°I don¡¯t care. If shees to pester me again, I will block her. You¡¯d better persuade her! I¡¯ll give her onest chance. Anyway, if you chase more stars, it doesn¡¯t matter if you chase one less.¡± Her younger brother would be a fan whenever a star rose to fame overnight, whether they were male or female. But the heat couldn¡¯tst long. Lia was the one who kept her poprity for the longest time. Hugh even asked her sister to visit the crew instead of him to support Lia. ¡°All right, big brother, I¡¯ll call Lia¡¯s agent immediately and tell her to persuade Lia not to appear in front of you again.¡± Hayden hung up after getting the answer, then she told the driver: ¡°Go back to the old house.¡± She hadn¡¯t been back to Queen¡¯s old mansion for a long time, and her mother often talked about her, and she was so busy with work that she didn¡¯t know to go home to see her parents. After more than an hour. Hayden¡¯s car drove into Queen¡¯s old mansion, and then slowly stopped in the open-air parking lot. After a few minutes. Hayden got off the car. When she got out of the car, she found a strange car parked in her parking lot. It was a Maybach, and she also had two such cars in her garage. She said that this car was wrong to her. It should be said that it was the license te number of this car, which she did not recognize. In Jensburg, Hayden knew the people who drove the Maybach, Hayden also remembered the license te numbers of those people, but she didn¡¯t know the license te number of this Maybach. The butler came out of the house and saw Hayden standing in front of the Maybach watching, the butler trotted over. ¡°Mr. Queen, you are back.¡± The butler: ¡°Whose car is this?¡± ¡°It belongs to a distinguished guest. That distinguished guest is the third young master of the York family in Wiltspoon.¡± The third young master of the York family? Suddenly, Kevin¡¯s handsome face appeared in Hayden¡¯s mind. Her family went to Wiltspoon to attend After her younger brother answered the phone, she said coldly: ¡°Hugh, tell Ms. Lia that if she pesters me again, I will block her!¡± Hugh was startled, and said, ¡°Brother, Ms. Lia just likes you, confessed to you a little more times, and didn¡¯t make a big mistake, so you don¡¯t have to block her, right? It¡¯s not easy for a little girl to be popr, and she has suffered a lot. Her dream is over, She is only twenty-three years old, she is very young, and her star path is still long.¡± Hugh was asked by her sister to call him big brother, but she got used to it, regardless of her predecessors, her elder brother was older and her younger brother was short. Mrs. Queen was extremely helpless. She used to correct her son¡¯s address, but she didn¡¯t bother to correct it anymore. Outsiders, no one seemed to know that Mrs. Queen gave birth to twins 28 years ago. Everyone thought Mrs. Queen had twins. Even many individuals who were close acquaintances with the Queen family were unaware that Hayden was a woman because she had been disguising herself as a woman since she was a child. Hayden: ¡°I don¡¯t care. If shees to pester me again, I will block her. You¡¯d better persuade her! I¡¯ll give her onest chance. Anyway, if you chase more stars, it doesn¡¯t matter if you chase one less.¡± Her younger brother would be a fan whenever a star rose to fame overnight, whether they were male or female. But the heat couldn¡¯tst long. Lia was the one who kept her poprity for the longest time. Hugh even asked her sister to visit the crew instead of him to support Lia. ¡°All right, big brother, I¡¯ll call Lia¡¯s agent immediately and tell her to persuade Lia not to appear in front of you again.¡± Hayden hung up after getting the answer, then she told the driver: ¡°Go back to the old house.¡± She hadn¡¯t been back to Queen¡¯s old mansion for a long time, and her mother often Property ? N?velDrama.Org. talked about her, and she was so busy with work that she didn¡¯t know to go home to see her parents. After more than an hour. Hayden¡¯s car drove into Queen¡¯s old mansion, and then slowly stopped in the open-air parking lot. After a few minutes. Hayden got off the car. When she got out of the car, she found a strange car parked in her parking lot. It was a Maybach, and she also had two such cars in her garage. She said that this car was wrong to her. It should be said that it was the license te number of this car, which she did not recognize. In Jensburg, Hayden knew the people who drove the Maybach, Hayden also remembered the license te numbers of those people, but she didn¡¯t know the license te number of this Maybach. The butler came out of the house and saw Hayden standing in front of the Maybach watching, the butler trotted over. ¡°Mr. Queen, you are back.¡± The butler: ¡°Whose car is this?¡± ¡°It belongs to a distinguished guest. That distinguished guest is the third young master of the York family in Wiltspoon.¡± The third young master of the York family? Suddenly, Kevin¡¯s handsome face appeared in Hayden¡¯s mind. Her family went to Wiltspoon to attend the wedding of Josh and Jasmine, and she and Kevin sat at the same table for dinner. In Jensburg, she also had contact with Kevin several times, especially when Mrs. Rork was hospitalized in Jensburg, she often visited the hospital. She also praised Kevin for being so filial in her heart. She heard that the juniors of the York family were very filial to their Grandma. She believed it was true. The impression Kevin left on Hayden was that apart from being handsome, there was another thing that impressed her the most, that is, being able to speak well, and being able to chat with anyone, it was easy for the other party to let go of their defenses and be tricked by him.the wedding of Josh and Jasmine, and she and Kevin sat at the same table for dinner. In Jensburg, she also had contact with Kevin several times, especially when Mrs. Rork was hospitalized in Jensburg, she often visited the hospital. She also praised Kevin for being so filial in her heart. She heard that the juniors of the York family were very filial to their Grandma. She believed it was true. The impression Kevin left on Hayden was that apart from being handsome, there was another thing that impressed her the most, that is, being able to speak well, and being able to chat with anyone, it was easy for the other party to let go of their defenses and be tricked by him. Chapter 1800 Chapter 1800 Her disguise as a man was a secret. ¡°What is the third young master of the York family doing here?¡± Hayden frowned, then asked: ¡°How long has he been here?¡± ¡°Several gifts were delivered, and Madam was delighted to see the third young master York stop by. She and the third young master York had a good conversation.¡± After thinking about it, Hayden said: ¡°Our family has a little friendship with the Bucham family, and the Bucham family has a very close rtionship with the York family. Alright, Third Young Master york probably came to Jensburg on a business trip, so he stopped by to pay a visit, it¡¯s all right. Uncle, you can go now.¡± Hayden entered the room alone. The bodyguards could move freely temporarily, but they dare not go far. Hayden usually didn¡¯t stay long when she returned to the old mansion, she just wanted to visit her mother, and then she had to go back to thepany. In the gorgeous hall, Mrs. Queen and Mr. Queen were both present, except for them, Kevin who just came to visit. Callum and Camryn were already engaged, Kevin and Callum received the photo from grandma at the same time, Kevin and Hayden had not made any progress at all, he was not in a hurry, also grandma was not in a hurry, but his parents were in a hurry. Under the repeated nagging of the beautiful mother, Kevin had no choice but to say that he was going to Jensburg for a business trip in order to be quiet, so he hurriedly flew to Jensburg. Avoiding the nagging of his beautiful mother. But his mother said that if he kept going, she would text him 24 hours a day and call every half an hour to urge the marriage. Under the threat of his mother, Kevin got off the ne and went back to his hotel in Jensburg to rest for a while. He bought a gift before returning to the vi he bought in N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Jensburg, and went straight to Queen¡¯s house to visit his future mother-inw. Last time he ate at the same table with the Queen family of four, and had a good chat with Mrs. Queen and Mr. Queen, and also had a good chat with Hugh. Having had dinner at the same table, Kevin¡¯s visit would be aboveboard, and it would not make Queen¡¯s family suspicious. As soon as Hayden entered the room, she heard theughter of her parents. Kevin¡¯s mouth was so eloquent that it coaxed her parents intoughter. Forget about the mother, she always had a low smile, and her father was a serious person, and he was also amused by Kevin. ¡°Kevin, when you are on a business trip in Jensburg, you should visit Auntie when you have time. Auntie hasn¡¯t been this happy for a long time.¡± Mrs. Queen said with a smile. She really liked Kevin more and more. Kevin was so eloquent and could always make herugh. It was a beautiful mood to get along with such a child. Compared with her two children, Kevin was much better. The son was fine, but thinking of her eldest son, oh, the daughter, Mrs. Queen had a headache. Hearing footsteps, Mrs. Queen looked towards the door of the house and said, My older son is back¡¯. The smiles were a little bit underwhelming. s, her daughter had been disguised as a man for too long, even her own mother was used to treating her daughter as a son. Hayden came over and called softly: ¡°Dad, Mom.¡± She looked at Kevin, nodded, and said hello: ¡°Mr. York.¡± Kevin was in charge of all the hotels under the York Corporation and was the boss of the catering industry. When Zachary was not present, everyone called him Boss York. Chapter 1801 Chapter 1801 After shaking hands with him, Hayden asked him to sit down. After Kevin sat down again, Hayden sat down beside her mother. Mrs. Queen turned her head to look at her imposing daughter, then looked at Kevin on the opposite side, and sighed in her heart, her daughter was more manly than Kevin. ¡°Whye back now?¡± Mrs. Queen asked her daughter gently, ¡°Aren¡¯t you still in the company at this time?¡± ¡°I just finished talking about a project, and I have some time, so I came back to see my parents.¡± In the presence of outsiders, she didn¡¯t dare to rx at all, for fear that Kevin would find out that she was actually a beauty. ¡°Mr. York, When did youe?¡± Hayden asked Kevin. Kevin replied with a smile: ¡°I just arrived today. I need to take care of some business matters. I came here on a business trip for a while. Last time I had dinner with auntie at N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. the same table and had a good chat. I will pay a visit.¡± ¡°Kevin, whenever youe to Jensburg in the future,e and sit, Auntie likes to chat with you very much.¡± Mrs. Queen liked Kevin very much. Kevin spoke clearly. He would be very sensitive of Mrs. Queen¡¯s age when conversing with her. He would only discuss interesting events from the past when conversing with the elderly. Although he was not from that era, but his grandma frequently spoke of it. If there were several, the conversation could continue and he would appear to have made a close friend. He could discussmon subjects with Mrs. Queen when conversing, whether it be discussing the children¡¯s life events, making soup, or cooking. Mrs. Queen could not continue talking to her daughter when she wanted to have a heart-to-heart conversation since she was ustomed to her daughter¡¯s taciturnity. She met Kevin, a young man, unexpectedly, and they struck up a wonderful conversation. The two of them only met twice, and Mrs. Queen regarded Kevin as a familiar nephew. Mrs. Queen would have preferred to ask Kevin to live in Queen¡¯s old mansion so that the couple could also enjoy the delight of being surrounded by the younger generation. However, she was aware that York¡¯s family hadnd in Jensburg and that Kevin had no shortage of ces to dwell. ¡°That¡¯s natural. As long as I am on a business trip to Jensburg, I wille to see Uncle and Auntie .¡± Donald said: ¡°Stay for dinnerter, I have ordered the kitchen to cook more dishes. Kevin, did you drive here by yourself? Your Uncle still wants to drink with you during dinner.¡± The future father-inw wanted to drink with him, so he naturally apanied him. Everyone drank alcohol when getting married. He needed to increase his ability to drink and get ready for the future. Kevin¡¯s alcohol capacity was actually very good, and he would not get drunk under normal circumstances. ¡°I¡¯m staying at our family¡¯s hotel, which is across the street from Queen¡¯s hotel. If Uncle could drive me back to the hotel after dinner, I¡¯d be happy to have a few drinks with him.¡± Before Hayden could speak, Donald said to his daughter: ¡°Ah Hayden, you also stay at home and eat before leaving. You will send Kevin back to the hotelter. Dad hasn¡¯t talked to anyone for a long time. I¡¯ve had a drink, and I¡¯m addicted to alcohol, so it¡¯s rare for me to hit it off with Kevin, and Kevin is a guest from afar, so I definitely want to have a drink or two with the guest.¡± What could Hayden say? Her parents agreed for her. Chapter 1802 Chapter 1802 Hayden had a team of bodyguards, and she could ask one of the bodyguards to act as Kevin¡¯s driver to take him back to the hotel. Thinking of this, Hayden replied in a low voice: ¡°Dad, it¡¯s okay, but don¡¯t drink too much wine.¡± Donald: ¡°It will make me drunk.¡± He needed his wife to serve him if he was drunk or high. He usually wasn¡¯t allowed to get drunk because his wife didn¡¯t want to serve him because she was concerned about his body. Hayden stopped talking. Since her parents wanted to stay with Kevin for dinner, Hayden, who originally wanted toe back to see her parents before leaving, could only stay at home and wait for dinner, but it was still early for dinner, she was really bored and felt a little ufortable. The main reason was that Kevin would look at her from time to time, not knowing if he was overthinking or if it was the fact, Hayden always felt that Kevin looked at her with unusual eyes. ¡°Ah, it¡¯s the first time for Kevin toe to our house. It¡¯s not time for dinner yet. Take Kevin out for a walk to get familiar with the environment of our house.¡± Mrs. Queen saw that her daughter was impatient, so she said. As the things were arranged so that her daughter would not get impatient and leave without eating. This was obviously a house, but because her daughter was always working, she treated it like a hotel and always left after eating. She could sometimes spend the night at home, but she didn¡¯t feel like she was at home. Instead, she felt like a guest. Hayden did not refuse her mother¡¯s arrangement, she said to Kevin: ¡°Mr. York, I will take you out for a walk.¡± Kevin stood up with a smile, and walked out of the main house with her. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Out of the main house, Kevin said to Hayden: ¡°Mr. Queen, I feel like you¡¯re ufortable in your own home. You doesn¡¯t usually live at home, right?¡± Hayden: ¡°The old mansion is too far away from thepany. I bought a house near thepany, I usually live there, and I seldom go home.¡± Kevin understood: ¡°It¡¯s simr to our brothers, and we are also like this. We rarely go back to Wildridge Manor, but we grew up in the Vi, so we are very fond of the Vi. If you have feelings, if you go back to the vi once in a while, it¡¯s like returning to your main battlefield, free from restraint.¡± Unlike Hayden who was like a guest in her old mansion, sitting on the sofa gave him a feeling of pins and needles. After Hayden was silent, she said, ¡°I only go back to the old mansion for a few days during the New Year.¡± Although the Queen family¡¯s old mansion was not a vi like the York family¡¯s old mansion, it still upied arge area. Theyout was excellent, and the scenery was stunning; it was a very modern garden vi. Chapter 1803 Chapter 1803 Hayden: ¡°There should be many suitors.¡± Kevin: ¡°There are suitors, and I want to like them. If I don¡¯t like them, that¡¯s their business and has nothing to do with me.¡± Kevin admitted that he, too, had many suitors. In fact, their brothers had many suitors, and Rowan was still a teenager who received love letters from girls at school. Hayden agreed with Kevin¡¯s words. She had many suitors as well, but she didn¡¯t like any of them. She couldn¡¯t like them because she was a normal woman, and she would never ept those girls¡¯ feelings. She just rejected a star¡¯s confession before going home. ¡°Mr. York, You¡¯re too good.¡± Hayden praised Kevin, which was also true. Kevin was in fact quite good, and there was nothing wrong with the male members of their York family. They were all excellent and could stand on their own. Even without family N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. support, they could maintain their own businesses. Her father often boasted that the olddy of the York family would train her children and grandchildren, and that the children and grandchildren could be talents under the training and training of her old man. ¡®If you have a lot of wealth, you need to be excellent in the younger generation to keep it. If you don¡¯t have the ability, no matter how much wealth you have, it will be ruined.¡¯ The children and grandchildren were capable, and the ancestors did not leave too much inheritance, and they could create more wealth. ¡°Mr. Queen, you¡¯re also very good. Mr. Queen, Do you have a girl you like?¡± Kevin asked Hayden. ¡°I haven¡¯t met a girl I like yet. I am overly upied with work, and my daily schedule is full. I have no time for a serious rtionship. Even though there are numerous suitors, they all like me. I don¡¯t like them because it¡¯s none of my business.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care about family background, of course I also want to have a good family of origin, I value the other party¡¯s family tradition very much, and I don¡¯t care about appearance, they say marrying a wife and a good man, as long as you don¡¯t look ugly, I can ept it.¡± Hayden was obviously a woman, and Kevin had a serious conversation with her about getting married. Hayden had been impersonating a man for more than two decades, and she feared she had forgotten she was a woman. Kevin faced Hayden, and always treated him as a man, and it was really impossible to unite him with the delicate beauty. ¡°Mr. Queen, I think the same thing as you do. Men must marry good women when they get married. As long as we have a good heart, we don¡¯t have to worry too much about how we look. When we marry a wife, we both value her family style, no matter how good ours is.¡± Kevin said. After finishing, he turned his head to look at Hayden, and said, ¡°Mr. Queen, Your family style is quite good.¡± Mr. Queen and Mrs. Queen were the original husband and wife for decades. Mr. Queen resisted the temptation from the outside, unlike others That¡¯s the way to raise the third and fourth children outside, and raise illegitimate children. Parents¡¯ single-mindedness and loyalty in their rtionship and marriage would also affect their children. Hayden: ¡°Our family has established family rules since the generation of my greatgrandmother. The younger generations must be loyal to the family and marriage. Anyone who vites the family rules will be expelled from the house, severed, and not allowed to share a cent of the family property. Chapter 1804 Chapter 1804 My great-grandfather and four concubines, although my great-grandmother was the first, she had suffered a lot. In order to keep her marriage and protect the interests of her children, she sacrificed a lot. My grandfather and the others also saw their mother¡¯s wronged life when they were young. Therefore, after my great-grandfather passed away and my great-grandmother took charge of the house. She established that family rule, and my grandparents followed that family rule. No one messes with men and women outside. Once married, it is a lifetime A couple for a lifetime. My brother and I will do the same. If we get married in the future, we will be absolutely loyal to our marriage. Marriage is a lifelong event, so we must be cautious, don¡¯t be impulsive, and think twice.¡± Kevin admired it as he walked. Although the scenery of Queen¡¯s courtyard was not as good as that of his Wildridge Manor, it was still beautiful and upies arge area. Maybe because he was used to the beauty of his own garden, Kevin still preferred his own vi. Kevin said: ¡°Other than having a good family style, Mr. Queen, you have no other requirements for the other half. I¡¯ll see if there are any girls who meet the requirements, introduce them to you, and see if I can get your matchmaker money.¡± Hayden was amused by Kevin. She smiled and said, ¡°Mr. York, You should solve your problem first. You have been urged to marry by your elders so you have to go to Jensburg to take refuge. Mr. York, you¡¯re not even 30 yet, right?¡± ¡°This exact year is I¡¯m 29, so it looks like I¡¯m a year older than you. I don¡¯t think it¡¯s too late for us men to get married at 35, especially since we have sessful careers. But the elders in my family are urging me desperately. In the past, my elder brother N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. was in the way. If my mother urged me to find a girlfriend, I could pull my elder brother out to block me. Now the elder brother has a wife, and the second brother has also a wife, so my mother is in a hurry.¡± Haydenughed again. Kevin¡¯s words were very funny, no wonder he could always make her parentsugh. ¡°Do you think my parents are in a hurry, Mr. Queen? We haven¡¯t turned 30 yet. We are not very old. Do we really need to be told? No one doesn¡¯t want me, but I haven¡¯t met the right person yet. It¡¯s just an individual. Marriage is a lifelong event. I need to find the right person, a girl who will make me want to stop being single on my own. Who knows if I listen to my parents and pick a woman at random to marry if I want to be happy? If I¡¯m not happy, I should split up. So I¡¯ll break another family rule. The men in our York family can¡¯t get divorced.¡± Kevin looked helpless. Chapter 1805 Chapter 1805 Hayden stopped, turned her head to look at the handsome face close at hand, met his smiling eyes. For a moment, she thought that Kevin knew that she was originally a red makeup. On second thought, it seemed impossible. No one in Jensburg knew that she was a woman. She had disguised herself as a man for more than 20 years, and she was very experienced. No one could know her true identity unless she took off her pants. Kevin had been to Jensburg several times and had been in contact with Hayden many times, but the contact time was not long, so it was impossible for him to know Hayden¡¯s identity as a woman. Hayden: ¡°Mr. York, are you interested in men? If you bring a man home, will the elders Property ? N?velDrama.Org. in your family ept it?¡± Kevin got so close, Hayden remained calm andposed. Kevin praised her for her concentration in his heart, she deserved to be the young owner of the Queen Enterprise. Kevin: ¡°I¡¯m not interested in men. If I really bring a man home, the elders may not be able to ept it for a while. After a long time, they will still be able to ept it. They said, as long as we juniors are happy.¡± Hayden smiled, ¡°Your parents are really enlightened.¡± She continued to walk forward, saying as she walked, ¡°I¡¯m not interested in homos*xuality either.¡± She only said that she was not interested in homos*xuality, not that she was not interested in men. Kevin: ¡°The elders of my York family are famous for being open-minded, Mr. Queen, then it¡¯s settled, we two help each other lead the red line.¡± Hayden: ¡°¡­¡± Kevin still took her seriously. Hayden also smiled, and didn¡¯t continue on this topic. It¡¯s impossible for Kevin to stay in Jensburg all the time. If he asked about holding the red line, Hayden could just find an excuse to turn him down. After Hayden apanied Kevin to wander around the yard, a maid came over and said dinner was ready. The two returned to the house together. Mrs. Queen watched the two peoplee in side by side. Her daughter was on par with Kevin in terms of height and aura. Kevin didn¡¯t know what to say to her daughter, his face was full of smiles, but her daughter was very serious with a straight face, and never responded to Kevin with her mouth. Mrs. Queen sighed in her heart. How could such a good daughter be raised like this? Her daughter didn¡¯t know how to chat, even her own mother often chats with her daughter to death. If her daughter is like her, she should find a man who can talk. Otherwise, the two of them would just stare at each other all day, and they wouldn¡¯t be liked at home if they didn¡¯t say anything. Chapter 1806 Chapter 1806 Donald was drunk, and Kevin had a good drinker, and he was enjoying himself. Mrs. Queen scolded her husband, ¡°Kevin is a generation younger than you, and he can be our son. You still call Kevin your younger brother. This is wrong, and the generation is messed up.¡± Kevin originally wanted to say that it didn¡¯t matter. But thinking that grandma May wanted him to marry Hayden, if he called brother to his future father-inw, it would be a mess of generations. He smiled and said nothing, and let Mrs. Queen scold her husband. Donaldughed and said: ¡°Kevin and I really didn¡¯t meet each other toote. Kevin, uncle regards you as a friend. We are friends who forget the year. When we are free, wee to eat and drink every day.¡± Kevin: ¡°Okay, As long as Uncle Queen invites me, no matter how busy I am, I will turn off work ande over to drink with Uncle Queen.¡± Hayden¡¯s mouth twitched. ¡°Dad, Mr. York is very busy with work, unlike Dad who is now a shopkeeper.¡± Hayden said to her father. On the surface, Queen Enterprise was still managed by her father. In fact, her father had long been a shopkeeper, and Hayden took care of everything in thepany. Donald: ¡°Your Dad is able to be the hands-off shopkeeper, that¡¯s because you are such an excellent son.¡± Donald praised his daughter to Kevin, ¡°Kevin, uncle can retire at such a young age, and I don¡¯t have to worry about anything when I¡¯m a hands-off shopkeeper. Queen Enterprise can also thrive, it¡¯s Hayden¡¯s ability, my son is ten sons of others.¡± ¡°Hayden and Hugh are twins, and their ability is a bit weaker, but Hayden alone Worthy of other people¡¯s five sons.¡± The best thing that ever happened to Donald was that he and his wife had twins. Both kids were wonderful. Hugh, his son, was not as stable as Hayden he was only able to take care of himself. If his daughter got married in the future and didn¡¯t want to manage the Queen Enterprise, Hugh could also take over the Queen Enterprise. As a parent, the happiest thing was the sess of his children. Kevin said: ¡°The Second Young Master Queen is also very good, Uncle Queen, you just wait to enjoy the blessings. In the future, Mr. Queen and the Second Young Master Queen will both get married and have children. Uncle and Auntie, You just need to care about your grandchildren.¡± After hearing what Kevin said, Donald¡¯s smile froze, and soon returned to normal. ¡°Dad, Mr. York just came here today. There should be many things waiting for him to deal with. I¡¯ll send Mr. York back first.¡± Hayden interrupted the conversation between her father and Kevin. If her parents hadn¡¯t asked her to send Kevin off, she would have left after dinner. Her father became the shopkeeper, and she and her younger brother had a heavy burden on her shoulders, especially she was actually the head of the family. There were many things waiting for her to deal with.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Chapter 1807 Chapter 1807 Hayden pretended not to see her parents¡¯ small movements. She wanted her bodyguard to act as Kevin¡¯s driver and take Kevin back to the hotel. Donald said: ¡°Hayden, you let Kevin take your car. Kevin drank a lot of wine. Dad is afraid that he will feel ufortable on the road, and no one will take care of him.¡± Hayden: ¡°¡­ Got it.¡± She was definitely picked up by her parents. For her siblings, her parents were not so considerate and caring. At the request of her parents, Hayden had no choice but to invite Kevin into her special car, and the driver of Maybach of Kevin asked Queen¡¯s bodyguard to help him drive back to York¡¯s hotel. After the car drove out of Queen¡¯s old mansion, Hayden turned her head to look at Kevin who was leaning on the back of the car seat and closed his eyes to rest after getting in the car. Hayden: ¡°Is Mr. York drunk?¡± Kevin: ¡°I¡¯m not drunk, but the wine is giving me a lot of energy. It¡¯s making me a little dizzy, but I¡¯m still awake.¡± Hayden said after a silence: ¡°My parents like you very much. It was the first time I saw my parents love you so much, my dad took out the good wine he had collected for many years and drank it with you, The wine would be delicious to drink, but it has a lot of energy, and it¡¯s usually because you don¡¯t feel it when you drink it that you be drunk.¡± Kevin opened his eyes and looked at her twice, then closed his eyes again. The wine had a lot of energy, and he said: ¡°Uncle Queen and Auntie Queen usually live a bit lonely, your brothers are busy with business matters every day, so they have little time to apany them. The most outstanding advantage of me is that I can coax people, that¡¯s why Uncle Queen and Auntie Queen like me so much.¡± Hayden smiled and said, ¡°No wonder your York family¡¯s catering business has be a leader in the industry after you took care of it.¡± Kevin mouth was very good at deceiving people. ¡°Business people must be eloquent, otherwise how can we talk about business? Mr. Queen, you must be eloquent and eloquent at work, but in life, you¡¯re habitually serious.¡± Hayden stopped talking. She was hit by Kevin. At work, she talked about projects with clients, and she could indeed talk freely. But in daily life, she was a taciturn person who could not speak without speaking, mainly because she was afraid that if she talked too much, others would see through her fake man identity. Kevin: ¡°Mr. Queen, I can¡¯t hold on any longer. I have to sleep for a while. When we get here, wake me up.¡± Hayden: ¡°Alright.¡± Kevin quickly fell asleep. Hayden turned her head to look at the night scene outside the car window, and didn¡¯t want to stare at Kevin. It¡¯s easy to get distracted by Kevin¡¯s handsome face. At Queen¡¯s house, after Hayden sent Kevin away, Mrs. Queen pulled her husband to blow the evening breeze and said to him: ¡°After drinking so much wine, blow the evening breeze to sober up.¡± ¡°Kevin¡¯s drinking capacity is not bad.¡± Donald boasted.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Chapter 1808 Chapter 1808 After being taken care of by Kevin, York¡¯s catering industry has be the leader. It would be great if such an excellent young man became our son-inw.¡± Donald sighed, ¡°Hayden is already 28 years old, and she still refuses to regain her body, and she has no one she likes. She is nning to be a man for the rest of her life, and she is still a bachelor.¡± Mrs. Queen said to her husband, ¡°I said it all. She loved herself when she was young and was dressing up as a boy and being a pair of brothers with her brother is up to her. When the children were young, they were all cute and they looked alike. It¡¯s hard to tell the difference between a boy and a girl. But when she grows up, she can¡¯t let her y a boy. She likes it, and said that she has the demeanor of a big brother, and if she wants to be a big brother, let her be a big brother. Now, she has been a fake man for more than 20 years, and she doesn¡¯t want to be a real woman anymore. She didn¡¯t even look at the high heels, and she hid the skirt she bought at the bottom of the cab. Girls like it, but she doesn¡¯t like it either. If it weren¡¯t for¡­ I thought I really had two sons.¡± Now, Mrs. Queen was experiencing a severe headache. ¡°We can¡¯t change her, let¡¯s count on her man to change her. If she has a man she likes, she will try to wear women¡¯s clothes to show the softness of girls a little bit.¡± Donald said and was jealous again after finishing speaking. He added, ¡°My precious daughter, for other men to show her femininity, I hate the man who pleases my daughter!¡± Mrs. Queen hit him: ¡°Your daughter is pursued by beautiful girls, there is no man, and your daughter has never liked a man, so I didn¡¯t see which man she would get closer to.¡± Donald: ¡°¡­Didn¡¯t God send one over now? I like Kevin very much. If Hayden can be with Kevin, I can die in peace. The family style of the York family is good, and the men of the York family are very dedicated. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. You didn¡¯t see Kevin¡¯s attitude towards Hayden, like a buddy, and he didn¡¯t know that Hayden was a woman, so how could he be with Hayden? Having been together for a long time, maybe Kevin will like Hayden, or Hayden likes Kevin, as long as she has someone she likes, she is willing to return to her original body. Don¡¯t worry, I think the two of them have a bit of drama, and they look like a husband and wife.¡± Mrs. Queen: ¡°¡­You can still see that they have a husband and wife rtionship.¡± Donaldughed: ¡°If Kevin can be our son-inw, I can wake up from my dreams withughter. I hope Hayden will work harder to make Kevin more beautiful. Kevin came back to be our son-inw.¡± Mrs. Queen couldn¡¯t help but hit her husband again: ¡°Our family has been chasing Yorks in the catering industry and wants to seize the leading position. If the two of them don¡¯t be lovers, they will instead be lovers. It¡¯s a deadly enemy. hehe.¡± Donald choked. After a long while, he said: ¡°I don¡¯t think Hayden is really targeting the York family. If there is not much conflict of interest, he will not be a deadly rival. Our Queen Enterprise also involves many industries, and the York Corporation is the same. The development of diversification is just thepetition in the catering industry, so we cannot be enemies.¡± Chapter 1809 Chapter 1809 Hayden sent Kevin back to the vicinity of the hotel, so she woke up Kevin, and said to Kevin: ¡± Mr. York, we¡¯re almost at your yorks¡¯ hotel.¡± Kevin sat upright and looked out the window, um, it was a familiar street scene. He said embarrassedly to Hayden: ¡°I slept all the way, and Mr. Queen, I made you laugh.¡± Hayden: ¡°Understood.¡± Hayden thought in her heart, he didn¡¯t wake up unconscious, it¡¯s already very good, otherwise she needed to take care of him all the way. Kevin asked her: ¡°Mr. Queen, where do you usually live?¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text. After a moment of silence, Hayden said, ¡°I bought a vi in the Yuvinn vi area. I usually live there. It is much closer to thepany. If you drive, it will only take you 10 minutes.¡± If Hayden lived in the old mansion with her parents, it would take an hour to drive back to thepany, and she couldn¡¯t afford to sleep longer. Hayden had a very steady schedule, and she was neverte for work. Every morning, she has to be at work before 8:30. Compared with other senior managers, she was considered early. If she stayed in bed longer due to the distance, woke upter, and then came back to thepany, it must beter than 9:00. In many instances, she was already in a meeting at 9:00. So for the sake of convenience, she bought a house outside. It was convenient to commute to and from get off work, and she didn¡¯t have to live with her parents. Kevin: ¡°The Yuvinn vi area is a high-end vi area in Jensburg. How much does a vi there cost? Are there any vis for sale now?¡± Hayden: ¡°Mr. York wants to buy it?¡± Kevin smiled and said: ¡°I used to live mostly in hotels, but I feel that living in hotels will never feel like home, so I want to buy a house as my home in Jensburg. But I seldome to Jensburg, and I don¡¯t know much about the houses here and you¡¯re from Jensburg, and your family is also involved in real estate. I think you can definitely help me with this.¡± Kevin said reasonably, Hayden didn¡¯t think too much about it, she said: ¡°The Yuvinn vi area is the best and the most high-end vi in Jensburg City, and it is very popr. It is basically sold out now. Mr. York, let me help you, if there are any more, you can go to see the house, and buy the one that suits you. If there is no more, I can introduce other vis to you. There are quite a lot of good vis in Jensburg.¡± Chapter 1810 Chapter 1810 Kevin: ¡°Mr. Queen, is it convenient for you to take me to see that house?¡± Hayden: ¡°It is no longer convenient because it is sote. Mr. York, I¡¯ll leave you a phone number, and you¡¯ll call it when you¡¯re free tomorrow, and someone will take you to the vi.¡± ¡°Okay, thank you very much Mr. Queen.¡± Kevin thanked Hayden. Hayden gave Kevin her housekeeper¡¯s phone number, ¡°Mr. York, this is my housekeeper¡¯s phone number. If you contact her, she will help you contact the owner of that house and show you the house.¡± The owner of the house spread the word that he wanted to sell the house, and he left a phone number for the neighbors to call if anyone wanted to buy a house at any time. Kevin: ¡°Okay, I will contact your housekeeper tomorrow. Thank you Mr. Queen for your help.¡± Hayden said lightly, ¡°It¡¯s just a matter of little effort, Mr. York, You don¡¯t have to be too polite.¡± Kevin might not buy that vi either. Even though it hadn¡¯t been fixed up, the vi was old. People who bought vis in Yuvinn Vi were either wealthy or paid a lot. People who didn¡¯t have a lot of money didn¡¯t usually buy old vis. The main reason was that the opponent was in the business of buying and selling houses. The price of the house was a bit more than the price of the new vi. Kevin was not short of money, but he won¡¯t be taken advantage of by others, right? Arriving at York¡¯s hotel in Jensburg, Hayden asked the driver to stop the car, and said to Kevin: ¡°Mr. York, we¡¯re here.¡± After seeing ¡°Fortress Hotel¡± Kevin thanked Hayden as he got out of the car and opened the door. He then asked Hayden, ¡°Mr. Queen, do you want toe in and have a seat?¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. Hayden looked at her own hotel diagonally opposite, and Kevin followed her gaze twice, and smiled clearly: ¡°Mr. Queen, when I buy the house, decorate it and move in, I¡¯ll invite you.¡± Hayden: ¡°Mr. York, I still have things to deal with, so I¡¯m leaving first.¡± Kevin waved goodbye to her with a smile. Queens¡¯ bodyguards helped Kevin park the car, and gave Kevin the car keys. Kevin took the car keys and thanked the bodyguards. Hayden¡¯s bodyguard was always with her, and she trusted him very much. Kevin was happy to look up to someone Hayden trusted. Kevin stood at the hotel¡¯s front door and watched Hayden¡¯s special convoy drive away. When the cars disappeared into the flow of traffic, Kevin shook the car key and went inside. The security guard at the entrance of the hotel and the lobby manager who came out from inside after receiving the news all watched Kevin get off Hayden¡¯s car. Although the York family and the Queen family were not deadly rivals, the two hotels were separated by a big road, and they were both so-called seven-star hotels. Among the many hotels in Jensburg, these two hotels were the most high-end and most luxurious hotels. The two hotels were more or less targeted. On the surface, the top executives of the twopanies had no intention of targeting each other, but they were fighting secretly. Anyway, if the workers of the two hotels met, no one would talk to the other. Not to mention going to the other party¡¯s territory, they all regarded the other party¡¯s hotel as a forbidden area, as if stepping into the other party¡¯s hotel was a betrayal. However, they saw Mr. York getting off Mr. Queen¡¯s car, and the rtionship between the two seemed to be quite good. This made the security guard and the lobby manager a little confused, so of course, they didn¡¯t dare to ask Kevin. After all, the parentpanies behind the two hotels were still a little friendly. Chapter 1811 Chapter 1811 Grandma May was not worried at all, she just showed it to Kevin. After Kevin hung up the phone, Grandma May contacted a master and asked the master to arrange for his apprentice to fly to Jensburg. Round-trip air tickets, board and lodging were all included. The master readily agreed. After arranging the affairs of Kevin, Grandma May was in a happy mood, and ran to the eldest grandson¡¯s house at night. Sam heard the doorbell and ran to open the door. Seeing that it was Grandma May, he was a little dumbfounded, and opened the door for her and asked: ¡°Madam, if you want toe here, don¡¯t call us in advance. We will pick you up. Did you take a taxi?¡± Grandma May had no trouble driving, but as she was getting older, her children and grandchildren always asked the driver to pick her up when she came in and out. ¡°I asked the driver to take me here, and I asked the driver to go back after getting off the car.¡± Grandma May responded, ¡°I don¡¯t need you to pick me up, and I don¡¯t need to call in advance. Are Zack and Serenity back?¡± It waste at night, In fact, it was only around 9:00 p.m. Sam replied: ¡°Young Master usually arrives home at 9:30, and Mistress usually arrives home before Masteres back, but tonight Mistress is apanying Young Master to socialize, so she may note back so soon.¡± Grandma May walked to the vi Said: ¡°The young couple is getting busier.¡± Sam said: ¡°Compared to before, the young master is much more rxed. It is the young mistress who is getting busier. The young mistress is busy with her business and also takes care of the young master¡¯s business.¡± Grandma May hummed. After entering the house, Sam asked the olddy: ¡°Do you want something to drink, Madam?¡± ¡°Just give me a ss of warm water.¡± Sam poured the olddy a ss of warm water. ¡°Sam, I just came here to take a look when I was bored. I have nothing else to do. Sit down and let¡¯s chat.¡± Everyone was at ease in front of Grandma May, who had a good temper, and they acted as though they were old friends. Sam sat down. Sam: ¡°Recently, eldest young master and eldest young mistress are okay here. they haven¡¯t been back to the vi for a while. eldest young master just asked the eldest young mistress to write a love letter to him, or to ask the eldest young mistress to coax him in various ways.¡± The olddyughed and said: ¡°Zack is a arrogant and coquettish guy, only Serenity can tolerate him.¡± Sam: ¡°Madam, there is something, I don¡¯t know whether I should tell you.¡± Grandma May: ¡°Since you have opened your mouth, just say it, don¡¯t tickle my curiosity and don¡¯t say it.¡± The olddy picked up the water ss and drank half a cup of warm water. She said to Sam with a good temper: ¡°Don¡¯t worry that Zack will me you. Even if you don¡¯t tell me, I can still find out what I want to know. Zack knows my skills and won¡¯t suspect you.¡± Sam: ¡°A young beautiful miss is following to our young master.¡± Sam immediately felt sympathy for the eldest young mistress. The eldest young mistress asionally had to deal with the sudden appearance of a rival in love, and she was unable to rx until she was old. Grandma May said without the slightest surprise, ¡°With his face and status, many girl like him. Although Zack has a firm rtionship, he loves Serenity very much, and will not betray their marriage, but I also said that his love luck is very prosperous, and when he is fifty or sixty years old, his love luck will be weaker.¡± Grandma May asked, ¡°By the way which daughter has taken a fancy to your young N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. master this time? Does Serenity know? When Serenityes back, I will talk to her and teach her how to deal with rivals in love.¡± Chapter 1812 Chapter 1812 Grandma May was not worried at all, she just showed it to Kevin. After Kevin hung up the phone, Grandma May contacted a master and asked the master to arrange for his apprentice to fly to Jensburg. Round-trip air tickets, board and lodging were all included. The master readily agreed. After arranging the affairs of Kevin, Grandma May was in a happy mood, and ran to the eldest grandson¡¯s house at night. Sam heard the doorbell and ran to open the door. Seeing that it was Grandma May, he was a little dumbfounded, and opened the door for her and asked: ¡°Madam, if you want toe here, don¡¯t call us in advance. We will pick you up. Did you take a taxi?¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Grandma May had no trouble driving, but as she was getting older, her children and grandchildren always asked the driver to pick her up when she came in and out. ¡°I asked the driver to take me here, and I asked the driver to go back after getting off the car.¡± Grandma May responded, ¡°I don¡¯t need you to pick me up, and I don¡¯t need to call in advance. Are Zack and Serenity back?¡± It waste at night, In fact, it was only around 9:00 p.m. Sam replied: ¡°Young Master usually arrives home at 9:30, and Mistress usually arrives home before Masteres back, but tonight Mistress is apanying Young Master to socialize, so she may note back so soon.¡± Grandma May walked to the vi Said: ¡°The young couple is getting busier.¡± Sam said: ¡°Compared to before, the young master is much more rxed. It is the young mistress who is getting busier. The young mistress is busy with her business and also takes care of the young master¡¯s business.¡± Grandma May hummed. After entering the house, Sam asked the olddy: ¡°Do you want something to drink, Madam?¡± ¡°Just give me a ss of warm water.¡± Sam poured the olddy a ss of warm water. ¡°Sam, I just came here to take a look when I was bored. I have nothing else to do. Sit down and let¡¯s chat.¡± Everyone was at ease in front of Grandma May, who had a good temper, and they acted as though they were old friends. Sam sat down. Sam: ¡°Recently, eldest young master and eldest young mistress are okay here. they haven¡¯t been back to the vi for a while. eldest young master just asked the eldest young mistress to write a love letter to him, or to ask the eldest young mistress to coax him in various ways.¡± The olddyughed and said: ¡°Zack is a arrogant and coquettish guy, only Serenity can tolerate him.¡± Sam: ¡°Madam, there is something, I don¡¯t know whether I should tell you.¡± Chapter 1813 Chapter 1813 Grandpa also had rivals in love when Grandma was young. Zachary was like his grandpa. Sam: ¡°Ms. Dawson, came to look for the young mistress once, and the young mistress was ready for the battle. As a result, the next day, the young mistress received the news that Ms. Dawson left Wiltspoon overnight.¡± ¡°Ms. Dawson, Oh, Analia, the only daughter of President Dawson of the Dawson Group, it¡¯s not surprising that she would like Young Master. She has some skills and is an only daughter. If there is no ident, the Dawson Group will be handed over to her in the future.¡± ¡°Ms. Dawson is arrogant, so she naturally feels that with her conditions, only a man like Young Master is worthy of her. However, His father is always a smart person, and he would not allow his daughter to intervene in other people¡¯s marriages.¡± Sam just knew these things, and he didn¡¯t know anything else. Grandma May: ¡°Ms. Dawson has been here? Did Zack not kick her out? The level of security in the mansion vi area is extremely high. Ms. Dawson should not be permitted entry. Who will help her to enter the vi?¡± Sam hurriedly said, ¡°We didn¡¯t bring Ms. Dawson in, but the owner of No. 188 kindly brought Ms. Dawson in.¡± Grandma May had already arranged the other half for the married grandchildren. She did not care when they would be able to appreciate the beauty; she was only concerned with the end result. The remaining grandchildren were still young, so they were not in a hurry. The young masters below the Sixth Young Master were relieved. Rowan wasn¡¯t worried at all because he wasn¡¯t an adult yet, and he knew that his grandmother had been busytely looking for wives for his cousins. He was still very interested and wanted to go to the theater with his grandmother. Someone gave him N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. several sets of test questions, so he spent the summer doing all kinds of questions at home. He just wanted his sister-inw to move back to the vi and live there for a while. Then he would hug her big thigh and go on vacation for a few days. Even though summer break was almost over, he hadn¡¯t yet had a good time. ¡°Eldest Young Mistress asked me to investigate, and I investigated the findings as well. I¡¯ll tell her the oue when she returns. I heard what she said about this matter, she can handle it on her own.¡± Sam sympathized with his eldest mistress. They had been married for a year, and there would be rivals in love. This time, the rival in love was not as sensible as Ms.Stone. Chapter 1814 Chapter 1814 Sam had seen too many storms. In Serenity¡¯s situation, he immediately guessed that she was being plotted against. Immediately, Sam¡¯s expression became serious. The young mistress of the York family dared to plot, that person was really courageous. What¡¯s more, the young mistress apanied the young master to socialize, that person was scheming against the young mistress under the young master¡¯s nose, and could notin that the young master¡¯s face was as dark as charcoal. Grandma May was also startled when she saw Zachary hurrying in with Serenity in his arms. Grandma May: ¡°Zack, what¡¯s wrong with Serenity?¡± ¡°Grandma, I¡¯ll talk to youter.¡± Seeing grandma at his home, Zachary was not surprised. Grandma May was very free to go wherever she wanted, and her Grandchildren often N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. wee her kind figure. While Zachary was speaking, he hurried upstairs with Serenity in his arms. The olddy stood at the foot of the stairs and watched. Sam walked up to the olddy, and said in a low voice: ¡°Madam, the youngest mistress may have been plotted against. I see that the youngest mistress¡¯s face is red and she is out of her mind.¡± Grandma May said, ¡°Tricked? Serenity is apanying Zack to socialize, who dares to plot against Serenity under Zack¡¯s nose?¡± Sam go out and find Jim and the others to find out what happened.¡± Sam nodded and hurried out to ask Jim and the others. Soon, Sam came in. ¡°How?¡± asked the olddy. She was really curious, who wouldn¡¯t be afraid of death, would plot against Serenity. ¡°Jim said that he met the young master of the Lowe family at the banquet. The young master of the Lowe family greeted the eldest young mistress and chatted for a while. Everyone drank. It didn¡¯t take long for the youngdy to have an ident. When the young master found out that something was wrong, he was furious on the spot and ordered someone to investigate. It was found that the other party was trying to plot against others. Who would have thought that the ss of wine with spices, will be asked by the young mistress.¡± The olddy remained silent. What kind of luck was Serenity. ¡°Sam, it¡¯s okay. Go and rest. I¡¯ll watch TV for a while. I haven¡¯t slept well recently. I can¡¯t fall asleep untilte at night.¡± The olddy asked Sam to rest, and she was waiting for Zachary on the first floor. It took Zachary a while toe down from upstairs. He had already changed his clothes, looked refreshed, and seemed to have taken a comfortable bath. Although he was refreshed, his face was still not good-looking. Grandma May looked at him with ridicule and ambiguity. Zachary calmly sat down beside grandma, and after sitting down, he asked grandma: ¡°What kind of wind is blowing tonight so that Grandma came to me? Since Serenity and I reconciled, Grandma seems to have forgotten that she has a grandson, who has not been here for a long time.¡± Grandma May was old and she had a little eyesight, and she didn¡¯t need toe here every day. She might gopletely blind if she stayed here for a long time. Chapter 1815 Chapter 1815 Grandma May smiled and asked Zachary: ¡°Do you want grandma to cook a delicious soup for you now?¡± Zachary¡¯s face was a little red, ¡°The weather¡¯s hot, I don¡¯t want to have a nosebleed.¡± Grandma May: ¡°Did you see Shawn Lowe?¡± After a moment of silence, Zachary nodded and said, ¡°The Lowe family sees that my rtionship with Serenity has stabilized, and Shawn is also resigned, so they take Shawn out of the house. The branchpany was transferred back and re-entered Lowe Enterprise, and now acts as Mr. Lowe¡¯s secretary, following Mr. Lowe every day, and Mr. Lowe personally takes him and teaches him.¡± Lowe Enterprise would still be handed over to Shawn in the future. Didn¡¯t even think about the offshoots of the Lowe family. Shawn was Mrs. Lowe¡¯s biological son and Jasmine¡¯s cousin. After Jasmine married into the Bucham family as a young mistress, the offshoots of the Lowe family gave up their hearts and dared not think about the Lowe Enterprise anymore. With a cousin like Josh around, if he dared topete with Shawn for Lowe Enterprise, he would be courting death, he might as well be honest. Otherwise, after Shawn came to power, he would eradicate dissidents like the eldest lady of the Newman family, and they would not be worth the loss. Grandma May: ¡°Mr. Lowe has only one son and one daughter. When his son is promising and capable of taking over thepany, how could he raise his nephew and daughter? Shawn is a good guy, but you suppressed him because he likes Serenity.¡± Zachary defended himself, ¡°Grandma, I never suppressed Shawn, it was his parents who sent him to the branch.¡± Grandma Mayughed. Zachary didn¡¯t suppress Shawn, but he suppressed the Lowe Enterprise. Mr. Lowe and his wife knew that Serenity¡¯s husband was Zachary, and after their son fell in love with Serenity, in order to protect themselves, they had no choice but to send their son to the most remote branch office. It not only tempered his son¡¯s character, but also separated him and Serenity, forcing him to break up his rtionship and give up his heart. Grandma May said: ¡°Now that he hase back and re-entered the Lowe Enterprise, are you unhappy seeing him? Serenity has known him for more than ten years, and because of you, he has be estranged, but in public, Serenity said a few words to him If so, that¡¯s a very normal thing. You, that heart is still like the eye of a needle. Serenity was unlucky to drink wine with other people¡¯s spices tonight, and you were the indirect harm, you provoked so many people. Analia brought Serenity a rival in love, so you have the nerve to me Serenity for saying hello to Shawn.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­Grandma, I didn¡¯t provoke Analia. What did Shr say?¡± Zachary opened his mouth, but couldn¡¯t refute. Grandma May took out a piece of red paper and handed it to Zachary. Zachary: ¡°Grandma, what is this?¡± Grandma May: ¡°The dowry gift for Serenity is ready. These are a few good days. You pick a good day and send the dowry gift to Liberty¡¯s residence for her to have a look at. Remember to go to Mrs. Stone, she is Serenity¡¯s aunt, Serenity¡¯s natal family, and she cares most about Mrs. Stone and Liberty.¡± As for the rtives in her hometown, if Serenity were willing to invite them to the wedding regardless of the past, the York family would also treat each other with courtesy, but if they wanted to represent Serenity¡¯s natal family to see the bride price for Serenity, she probably wouldn¡¯t be willing. She didn¡¯t look at the fact that her rtionship with her grandparents in her hometown seemed to have eased a lot; in fact, the two sisters still had hatred in their hearts. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. It¡¯s just that they got back what they deserved. In addition, their grandparents were getting old and had one leg in the coffin. The sisters didn¡¯t want to make trouble with them anymore. Zachary had stopped suppressing their uncles and auntie, but their situation was deteriorating. They couldn¡¯t even estimate any business and were constantly losing money. People in the vige said that God is taking revenge on them. No matter what the people asked them to do, nothing would go well. Maybe it was the soul of the third son of the Hunt family who came back to punish his brothers, uncles and nephews. Chapter 1816 Chapter 1816 Zachary had already prepared the bride price for Serenity, but the elders in the family had to add something to it, so he dyed until now and hadn¡¯t actually delivered the bride price. He still saw a few good days selected by Grandma, and decided to use the most recent good day. The betrothal gift had been sent, and the wedding had to be prepared. He wanted to give Serenity a grand wedding that would cause a sensation in Wiltspoon, surpassing Josh and Jasmine¡¯s wedding. Since Serenity was his wife, he refused to allow other women to touch him again. Outside, he would never like them. ¡°How are you and Serenity doing?¡± Grandma May asked casually. ¡°Very well, Serenity and I have always been very good, but Serenity is busy now and always ignores me. If I didn¡¯t remind her from time to time and show my presence in front of her every day, she might forget me. Grandma, You really don¡¯t know. If Serenity is on a business trip, she really doesn¡¯t text or call me for days and nights. Instead, she plunges into her business. She¡¯s even more of a workaholic than I was before. When Serenity is on a business trip, I stay in the empty room alone. It will be a long night, and I will not be able to sleep alone. If I don¡¯t send her a message or make a phone call for a day, I won¡¯t eat well or sleep well.¡± Zachary looked sad while he was talking. Grandma May chuckled, and stabbed him with what he said before: ¡°I didn¡¯t know who said that he didn¡¯t chase his wife before. The person who said this never thought that one day he would like to turn into a brown candy and stick to his wife all the time.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­Grandma, how long has it been, and you still stab me.¡± Grandma May: ¡°As long as you can stab me, grandma can stab you. Haha, grandma like to see you being pped in the face the most.¡± Zachary looked at his grandma helplessly. Besides grandma who dared to treat him like this, there was Serenity. After grandmaughed, Zachary asked her: ¡°Grandma, you¡¯re done with work?¡± Grandma May: ¡°I¡¯m not yet an adult, and I don¡¯t know if I can live to the day when I urge Rowan to get married.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t like to hear such depressing words from grandma, although grandma was over eighty years old and in good health and well maintained. That¡¯s right, she looked like she was in her early sixties, and no one could tell that she was that old anymore.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Chapter 1817 Chapter 1817 Zachary: ¡°Besides, I have only Serenity alone, no matter how young and beautiful the women outside are, I only have Serenity in my eyes.¡± Grandma May nodded, ¡°I still believe in myself, the grandson I trained by myself will not a ruthless person, and I also believe that Serenity still loves you, so she will guard her man and deal with her rivals outside. If she doesn¡¯t want to fight, control or defend, then it¡¯s against you to give up.¡± Zachary¡¯s face was dark, but he knew that what grandma said was the truth. Serenity was not the kind of person who regarded love as everything. Whenever he had the slightest intention of cheating, Serenity would definitely break his love with a sword. She didn¡¯t need him to take the initiative. She would take the initiative to give him up to others, and she was toozy to fight with others. She said that what could be taken away was not true love, since it was not true love, why should she keep it? If you can keep people but can¡¯t keep your heart, it¡¯s better to break up with each other, and you don¡¯t have to make such an ugly mess. ¡°Grandma, I don¡¯t have any feelings for Analia. I haven¡¯t even looked at her. She posted it on her own initiative. Serenity insisted on fighting on her own, but I watched from behind. If she dares to confront Serenity, I promise to make her regret it.¡± Zachary still exined Analia¡¯s matter to grandma. He knew that before he came back, grandma had already learned about that incident through Sam. Analia¡¯s admiration was like a disaster to Zachary. Grandma May smiled and said: ¡°If she dares to attack Serenity, you don¡¯t need to do it. Serenity can beat her all over the ce. Serenity hasn¡¯t practiced for a long time, and she is looking for someone to practice with.¡± Zacharyughed. His wife would really do what grandma said. Grandma May: ¡°As long as it doesn¡¯t affect the rtionship between the two of you, grandma doesn¡¯t care. If you dare to let Serenity suffer a little bit of grievance, don¡¯t me grandma for being rude to you. I have too many grandsons, no baby, I am in need of a grandson-inw now. It¡¯s a treasure, you can¡¯t lose it.¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­¡± His grandma was a typical example of wanting a granddaughter-inw instead of a grandson. ¡°Zack, grandma is staying at your house for the past few days. When you two are free, you can take me back to the vi. And don¡¯t keepining that Serenity ignores you. Serenity works so hard for you, she could have lived a free and rtively rxed life, because she was under a lot of pressure after marrying you, so she worked so hard. If she didn¡¯t love you, if she didn¡¯t want to spend the rest of her life with you, she could completely let go. You don¡¯t need to work so hard, you have to understand her more, care about her, tolerate her, and help her when she needs help.N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Chapter 1818 Chapter 1818 Grandma May said: ¡°The cabbage has been arranged for you, do you want me to chop it up and cook it for you and feed it to your mouth?¡± Zachary¡¯s face turned dark. As long as grandma mentioned cabbage, it meant that the brothers were like pigs. Had Grandma ever seen a pig as good-looking as them? Always treated them like pigs. Grandma May yawned, and she stood up, ¡°Grandma is sleepy, go to rest, and you go to bed early.¡± Zachary: ¡°Good night, grandma.¡± Grandma May was about to go upstairs to rest, stopped after walking a few steps, turned around and asked Zachary: ¡°Does Liberty still need to take care of Duncan after he is discharged from the hospital? That kid is also obsessed. He obviously loves her to death, but he pretends to let go.¡± ¡°Sister leads the red line, hurry him to death!¡± Zachary hurriedly spoke good words for his friend, lest the old naughty grandma had no one to arrange for, so he went to worry about his friend¡¯s affairs, he said: ¡°Duncan just came home from the hospital, so many people in the family take care of him. He doesn¡¯t need my sister to go to Lewis house to take care of him for the time being. Duncan did that because he was afraid of dragging my sister down, but he is in more pain than anyone else. My sister has bought a restaurant now, and she is also busy with business matters. Duncan feels sorry for her being tired, no matter how ufortable it is, he will bear it in a short time. If the rehabilitation took a long time and there was no progress, Duncan might lose his temper again, and only then did Liberty need to go on stimting him. Hank also had an ident. He was stabbed several times by his current wife, Jessica. He is still lying in the ICU. I don¡¯t know if he can survive in the end. My sister N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. still takes Sonny to the hospital asionally.¡± Grandma nodded and said, ¡°Liberty is affectionate and righteous. For the sake of Sonny, she never said anything bad about her ex-husband in front of Sonny.¡± Grandma May felt sorry for Liberty; if Duncan didn¡¯t know how to cherish Liberty, she promised to introduce a good man to her so that her second spring would be a hundred times happier than the first. Let both Duncan and Hank regretted it. After being discharged from the hospital, Duncan, who was recuperating at home, sneezed a few times inexplicably. Grandma Mya went upstairs to rest, and Zachary sat downstairs for a while, and then went upstairs to apany his wife. The following day, when the sun was at its highest, Serenity finally woke up. After waking up, she felt that her waist was a little sore. While rubbing her waist, she picked up the mobile phone on the bedside counter, and saw a note pressed under the mobile phone. She knew it was a note from her man without asking. ¡°Honey, I cooked breakfast for you myself. You eat breakfast when you get up, and I also made you a cup of tonic soup. You must drink the tonic soup. Grandma came overst night and will stay at our house for a few days.¡± The signature was: Zachery who loves you. Grandma was here? Serenity¡¯s focus was on the arrival of Grandma May. Why didn¡¯t she know grandma was here? She came herest night. She apanied Zachary to a social eventst night, and she was attending a banquet. At the banquet, she met Shawn whom she hadn¡¯t seen for a long time. The two greeted each other, and she casually asked about Shawn¡¯s recent situation. In any case, she grew up watching him grow up. She regarded him as her younger brother, and she was also a good friend¡¯s first cousin. Serenity felt that the few conversations she had with Shawn were the most normal. But Zachary was obviously unhappy. Serenity scowled as she recalled what happened the previous evening. How could she rememberst night¡¯s events where she brought Zachary two sses of wine, gave him one, and then drank one herself before convincing him to clink sses with her and making him happy once more. Then she drank and had no memory after that Chapter 1819 Chapter 1819 This time Analia called Serenity. The called ID name showing was ¡®No. 1 rival, Analia¡¯. Analia came to her door and asked for her contact information at the end. Serenity was ready to fight her love rival and was not afraid of Analia¡¯s contact, so she gave Analia her mobile phone number. She got a fake number and made a phone call in front of her. Serenity made a note of Analia¡¯s mobile phone number, thinking that she would have more rivals in love in the future, so she numbered Analia as ¡°1¡±. Let¡¯s see how many numbers her rival number could end. Serenity answered Analia¡¯s call. Analia: ¡°Miss Hunt.¡± ¡°Ms. Dawson, you asked me out for coffee?¡± Serenity asked Analia directly. After Analia choked, she said with a smile, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I will definitely find time to treat you to drink the cup of coffee I owe you.¡± Serenity: ¡°I¡¯ll wait.¡± Analia: ¡°Miss Hunt, you seem to have just woken up.¡± Serenity¡¯s eyes flickered, and she said calmly: ¡°Ms. Dawson, just say something.¡± ¡°Miss Hunt, it¡¯s nothing, just exin to you that I have something urgent to go home that night, so I will miss the appointment.¡± Serenity Oh, let out a cry. The two were rivals in love. When they were not arguing, there was really nothing to talk about. After a moment of silence between each other, Analia broke the silence between each other and said bluntly: ¡°Miss Hunt, I like Zachary and fell in love with him at first sight.¡± Serenity: ¡°Ms. Dawson, You¡¯re going to confess to Zachary? Then you should go to Zachary, tell Zachary face to face.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. At least not right now, Analiacked the courage to confess to Zachary. She was free from her father¡¯s restrictions once the two businesses¡¯ cooperation came to an end, so she could pursue Zachary without hesitation. Men are like cats, and she has cats that don¡¯t eat fish. It¡¯s been a year since Zachary and Serenity got married, mightbe Zachary got tired of Serenity a long time ago. Serenity had never been pregnant, and the two of them still hadn¡¯t tied the knot. In private, a lot of people imed Serenity wasn¡¯t fertile. Zachary was the eldest grandson and the head of the York family, which had a sessful career. He must have an heir and be incredibly eager to have children. This time was right, she pursued Zachary in hopes of winning his heart and convincing him to leave Serenity and marry her. If she had Zachary and the York Corporation as her backing, she wouldn¡¯t have to worry about her cousins snatching the Dawson Group from her. ¡°When I have a chance, I will confess my love to Zachary. Miss, Hunt, I am better than you, and I am more suitable for Zachary than you. I am a person who will not give up until I achieve my goal. I have never been so interested in a man. I feel that I have never been married since I was single, and I don¡¯t have a boyfriend. I am just waiting to meet Zachary.¡± When the topic started, Analia said everything she wanted to say. Serenity cursed shamelessly in her heart, but on the face she was very calm, and asked Analia: ¡°Then what? Let me make room for you, Ms. Dawson? Or Ms. Dawson, you advise me to be more generous and share Zachary with you?¡± Analia¡¯s face darkened, and she said, ¡°I don¡¯t like sharing with others.¡± What she wanted was everything. Chapter 1820 Chapter 1820 Serenity: ¡°If you want me to make room for you, you go to Zachary, as long as Zachary tells me to make room for you, I will immediately give you the position of the eldest mistress of the York family.¡± Analia: ¡°Miss Hunt, you are not worthy of Zachary.¡± Serenity: ¡°Zachary is going to marry me. I am his wife, and thew says so. My husband and I are the only ones who know if you are worthy or not. And you¡¯re an outsider.¡± Those who aspire to be mistresses and want to meddle in other people¡¯s marriages, once they put their morality aside, it would be really shameless. ¡°Ms. Dawson, It¡¯s not your turn to say whether Zachary and I arepatible. I don¡¯t know who Ms. Dawson belongs to Zachary? Which onion or garlic? Zachary¡¯s grandma, his parents, never told me If that¡¯s the case, what right does Ms. Dawson have to say such a thing?¡± Analia was speechless by Serenity¡¯s refutation, so she simply hung up the phone. After she hung up the phone, Serenity scolded: ¡°The family background is so good, and the conditions are so excellent in all aspects, but the brain is not clear, and the door is trapped, and she want to be a mistress!¡± Analia made aparison, and Serenity became more and more angry. She felt that her cousin was very rare, and Elisa was the real daughter of a famous family, excellent, and three views were upright. ¡°The typical mistress I know is Jessica, and she can¡¯t get out in the bureau now.¡± Serenity muttered, wondering what those women who wanted to be mistresses thought. Wasn¡¯t it good to be aboveboard? If you insist on being the shady mistress who has been scolded all your life, even the children born to them will be discriminated against by others once it is known that their Property ? N?velDrama.Org. child was born to the mistress. After rubbing her pantothenic waist, Serenity went to wash up, changed her clothes, and went downstairs. She got upte, Grandma May had already had breakfast, and she was watching a TV series in the lobby on the first floor. Hearing the sound of footsteps, Grandma May turned her head to look, and saw that it was Serenity. Sheughed first, and when Serenity approached, she smiled and asked, ¡°Serenity, You¡¯re awake, are you hungry?¡± ¡°Hungry, wake up from hunger. Grandma, did youe overst night? I don¡¯t even know.¡± Serenity sat down next to Grandma May, and held her arm affectionately. ¡°I¡¯m afraid you didn¡¯t know a lot of thingsst night.¡± Grandma May smiled ambiguously, ¡°Let¡¯s go have breakfast first, it¡¯s a loving breakfast specially prepared by your man. Serenity, I¡¯m very lucky, I am Zack¡¯s grandma, and I rarely have the opportunity to eat the breakfast he made. He also specially made you a pot of tonic soup.¡± Serenity said with a smile: ¡°Grandma, if you want to eat, just say that Zachary rushed to cook breakfast for you; if you think it doesn¡¯t taste good, I can make something delicious for you.¡± Grandma May took her hand and said: ¡°Your hands are soft and slender, with delicate skin and tender meat, grandma is reluctant to let you cook, so let him cook. Grandma has worked hard to train him to be able to live in the hall and enter the kitchen, so that you can enjoy yourself.¡± Serenity: ¡°Grandma, did something happen to mest night? I only remember a little bit about what happenedst night.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay; even if something happened, Zack took care of it. It won¡¯t do you much harm; at most, it will let your waist be just a little sore. It¡¯s fine; hurry up and have breakfast, and remember to drink that tonic soup.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­¡± Chapter 1821 Chapter 1821 Serenity: ¡°If you want me to make room for you, you go to Zachary, as long as Zachary tells me to make room for you, I will immediately give you the position of the eldest mistress of the York family.¡± Analia: ¡°Miss Hunt, you are not worthy of Zachary.¡± Serenity: ¡°Zachary is going to marry me. I am his wife, and thew says so. My husband and I are the only ones who know if you are worthy or not. And you¡¯re an outsider.¡± Those who aspire to be mistresses and want to meddle in other people¡¯s marriages, once they put their morality aside, it would be really shameless. ¡°Ms. Dawson, It¡¯s not your turn to say whether Zachary and I arepatible. I don¡¯t know who Ms. Dawson belongs to Zachary? Which onion or garlic? Zachary¡¯s grandma, his parents, never told me If that¡¯s the case, what right does Ms. Dawson have to say such a thing?¡± Analia was speechless by Serenity¡¯s refutation, so she simply hung up the phone. After she hung up the phone, Serenity scolded: ¡°The family background is so good, and the conditions are so excellent in all aspects, but the brain is not clear, and the door is trapped, and she want to be a mistress!¡± Analia made aparison, and Serenity became more and more angry. She felt that her cousin was very rare, and Elisa was the real daughter of a famous family, excellent, and three views were upright. ¡°The typical mistress I know is Jessica, and she can¡¯t get out in the bureau now.¡± Serenity muttered, wondering what those women who wanted to be mistresses thought. Wasn¡¯t it good to be aboveboard? If you insist on being the shady mistress who has been scolded all your life, even the children born to them will be discriminated against by others once it is known that their child was born to the mistress. After rubbing her pantothenic waist, Serenity went to wash up, changed her clothes, and went downstairs. She got upte, Grandma May had already had breakfast, and she was watching a TV series in the lobby on the first floor. Hearing the sound of footsteps, Grandma May turned her head to look, and saw that it was Serenity. Sheughed first, and when Serenity approached, she smiled and asked, ¡°Serenity, You¡¯re awake, are you hungry?¡± ¡°Hungry, wake up from hunger. Grandma, did youe overst night? I don¡¯t even know.¡± Serenity sat down next to Grandma May, and held her arm affectionately. ¡°I¡¯m afraid you didn¡¯t know a lot of thingsst night.¡± Grandma May smiled ambiguously, ¡°Let¡¯s go have breakfast first, it¡¯s a loving breakfast specially prepared by your man. Serenity, I¡¯m very lucky, I am Zack¡¯s grandma, and I rarely have the opportunity to eat the breakfast he made. He also specially made you a pot of tonic soup.¡± Serenity said with a smile: ¡°Grandma, if you want to eat, just say that Zachary rushed to cook breakfast for you; if you think it doesn¡¯t taste good, I can make something delicious for you.¡± Grandma May took her hand and said: ¡°Your hands are soft and slender, with delicate skin and tender meat, grandma is reluctant to let you cook, so let him cook. Grandma has worked hard to train him to be able to live in the hall and enter the kitchen, so that you can enjoy yourself.¡± Serenity: ¡°Grandma, did something happen to mest night? I only remember a little bit about what happenedst night.¡± ¡°It¡¯s okay; even if something happened, Zack took care of it. It won¡¯t do you much harm; at most, it will let your waist be just a little sore. It¡¯s fine; hurry up and have breakfast, and remember to drink that tonic soup.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­¡±C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Chapter 1822 Chapter 1822 Chapter 1822 Serenity suddenly understood the reason. She must have been calcted by someone, and then her man became her antidote, no wonder she felt a little sore when she woke up today. It was not easy for Serenity to discuss this topic with Grandma May, so she had to go to have breakfast first, and nned to ask Zachary about it when Zachary came back. At the same time, the York Corporation. The president¡¯s office weed a rare visitor, Andrew. Just as Zachary put down his signature pen, he picked up the cup of coffee on the desk with one hand, and took out his mobile phone from his trouser pocket with the other, thinking of calling his beloved wife, Andrew knocked on the door and came in. Seeing that it was Andrew, Zachary didn¡¯t call his beloved wife for the time being. He sipped his coffee and watched Andrew approaching. ¡°Brother.¡± Andrew called Zachary, and sat down opposite Zachary. ¡°What do you want to drink?¡± Zachary asked his cousin. ¡°I don¡¯t feel thirsty. I¡¯ll pour water myself if I¡¯m thirsty.¡± Zachary was not polite to Andrew, since he said he wasn¡¯t thirsty, Zachary really didn¡¯t even pour him a ss of warm water. Zachary: ¡°It¡¯s rare toe to me, do you want to ask for something?¡± The Reading family kept a low profile, even though Andrew and others had close contacts with Zachary, but on the bright side, the Reading family rarely came to disturb Zachary¡¯s work, so Andrew came over suddenly, Zachary thought he was asking for something. ¡°It¡¯s not because of Elisa.¡± Zachary put down his coffee cup, looked straight at Andrew, and asked him: ¡°Why, I haven¡¯t seen you for a while, and you actually fell in love with Elisa?¡± Andrew quickly denied: ¡°I didn¡¯t fall in love with her, it was Remy who fell in love with her. Mrs. Stone came to me and asked me to help her, let me pretend to like Elisa, and pursue Elisa, saying that this would make Remy quit in spite of difficulties. Remy likes Elisa and is willing to marry her daughter, she should beughing. Elisa¡¯s reputation in Wiltspoon is not very good, and she has admired you a lot. No one would think about her.¡± Elisa was madly in love with Zachary, and even though she had let go of Zachary, no one in Wiltspoon would think about Elisa for fear of Elisaparing them to Zachary. They couldn¡¯tpete with Zachary, and they didn¡¯t want to bepared to him. ¡°The Johnsons are the wealthiest family in Annenburg, and they are billionaires. Although Remy is not the family¡¯s head, his brother is the family¡¯s head. He runs FC & Co.¡¯s business in Wiltspoon and makes a lot of money. It is more than sufficient. Remy also owns several properties in Wiltspoon, and the house he boughtter is next to the Stone¡¯s vi, and both of them are neighbors. I don¡¯t know what Mrs. Stone is worried about? After seeing Brother Duncan¡¯s car ident, Mrs. Stone didn¡¯t dare to stop Elisa and Remy from being together as strongly as Mrs. Lewis, so she thought of something heresy and came to me again and again to match Elisa and me. Brother, I am so annoyed by Mrs. Stone. I¡¯m afraid, I really promised her and helped her, what if Elisa finally abandons Remy and falls in love with me? I married her? If I can¡¯t keep my heart and fall in love with Elisa, what should I do if she doesn¡¯t love me? Wouldn¡¯t I have to suffer a love injury that cannot be loved?¡± Zachary: ¡°¡­My aunt is still entangled in this matter.¡± Andrew said: ¡°No, brother, she is my sister-inw¡¯s aunt, and also values me as a soninw. Brother, can you go and persuade Mrs. Stone?¡±C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Chapter 1823 Chapter 1823 Chapter 1823 Andrew couldn¡¯t figure it out; the Stones were so persistent that they weren¡¯t afraid of really breaking up Elisa and Remy; would Elisa never marry again for the rest of his life? That woman, Elisa was not the type to let her parents and family dictate her marriage. Who in her family initially encouraged her to pursue Zachary? She was still adamant about not hitting the south wall and not looking back. In other words, Elisa inherited her stubbornness from her family, who were all simrly obstinate and unwilling to yield. Zachary also said rather helplessly: ¡°I can¡¯t persuade my aunt, even your sister-inw¡¯s persuasion has failed countless times, what do you think? Have you agreed to Mrs. Stone¡¯s help?¡± Belongs to ? n0velDrama.Org. Andrew said: ¡°I haven¡¯t agreed yet, I¡¯m not worried, I came to talk to you, brother. I¡¯m just afraid¡­I¡¯m afraid that I won¡¯t be able to control my heart, and I will fall in love with Elisa.¡± Elisa was very persistent in dealing with feelings. Zachary could see it. Now she liked Remy, but her family didn¡¯t support her, she was still in a rtionship with Remy, and wanted to get her family¡¯s approval through time. Andrew was not too worried that Elisa would empathize with him, but he was afraid that if he couldn¡¯t control his heart and fell in love with Elisa, he would be the one who would be hurt in the end. Did Mrs. Stone think he had good concentration? He discovered that Elisa was not as bad as the rumors said, on the contrary, she was quite to his liking because of her willfulness. Zachary was stunned. He looked at Andrew for a long time,ughed, and jokingly said: ¡°Andrew, this is the first time I¡¯ve seen you so unconfident, you¡¯re afraid to like Elisa.¡± Andrew¡¯s face was a little red, and he exined: ¡°I don¡¯t like her now, I mean, if I agree to Mrs. Stone and help her, I¡¯m afraid that after getting along for a long time, I will like Elisa.¡± Zachary suggested: ¡°Elisa is very persistent in dealing with feelings. Don¡¯t enter into this muddy water. Elisa only has Remy in her eyes now. Go to Remy and tell Remy about this. This is Remy¡¯s business. It should give Remy a headache. If my aunt still looks for you, you can rmend a gay man to her, don¡¯t rmend the kind who is only interested in men and has no feelings for women. Only such a person can help Mrs. Stone and get out of it.¡± The old man of the Ormond family in Annenburg once used this trick to deal with Yves, forcing out Yves¡¯s feelings for Iris, without knowing it. Really destroy Yves and Iris, because the other party was a real gay man who only liked men. Andrew had a dark face, and said: ¡°No one of my friends is gay, how can I rmend it? Besides, Mrs. Stone intends to pair me with Elisa and simply separate Elisa and Remy.¡± After finishing speaking, he asked Zachary again: ¡°Is there any man you know?¡± Zachary hurriedly said: ¡°I don¡¯t know each other either. Your brother and I are normal men. Your sister-inw is interested, but the men and women outside are not interested. If it doesn¡¯t work, you can go to Julian for help. Julian is sick, so he won¡¯t like Elisa, but the price may be higher if you let him act. One point, after all, Julian¡¯s identity is there.¡± Julian¡¯s status could crush Remy, if Julian pretended to pursue Elisa, Remy would be under great pressure. Chapter 1824 Chapter 1824 Chapter 1824 Withpetition and pressure, you will cherish Elisa even more. I am testing you as a rtive of Elisa¡¯s natal family. And for Remy¡­These days, it is too difficult to marry a girl!¡± ¡°Julian is sick?¡± Andrew seemed to have discovered a new world, and suddenly became interested, and asked Zachary: ¡°Brother, what¡¯s wrong with Julian? Not good in that aspect? No wonder he is simr to Brother Duncan. At this age, he is still single. I thought he hasn¡¯t met someone he likes, so he is sick.¡± Julian had always been at the forefront of eating melons, he never imagined that one day, he had be the protagonist in other people¡¯s eating melons. ¡°It¡¯s not impossible, it means that there is ack of affection, that is, he can be a real man only when he meets a girl who is destined for him. If he doesn¡¯t meet him, he is no different from a eunuch. I don¡¯t know if it is true or not. When dealing with Julian¡¯s urging marriage, he said it in front of our faces.¡± After Zachary finished speaking, Andrew let out a groan, his interest was not so high, and said: ¡°It must be fake, he is already old, It¡¯s normal for Julian to urge marriage, but he doesn¡¯t want to get married, so he will definitely find a reason to refuse his parents¡¯ urging marriage. But Julian has approached my grandma, didn¡¯t my grandma know a very powerful master, that master said I have a rtionship with your sister-inw. My grandma forced me to repay her favor and marry your sister-inw. I don¡¯t know what the master said to Julian, but Julian really didn¡¯t urge meter. It¡¯s past Julian.¡± Andrew blinked, ¡°Could it be that what Julian said is true? What kind of disease is that? I¡¯ve never heard of it.¡± Zachary: ¡°I¡¯m not a doctor, so I don¡¯t understand these things. I¡¯ll just listen to what C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Julian said.¡± Andrew got up and poured himself a cup of warm water. After he drank half a cup of warm water to moisten his throat, he said: ¡± Mrs. Stone dare not make ideas on Julian. ¡°I¡¯d better find Julian by myself, what kind of luck am I getting involved, I have to spend a lot of money to invite Julian, help me get out of trouble.¡± Andrew felt that he was too innocent. If Elisa didn¡¯t like Remy and Mrs. Stone wanted to match Andrew and Elisa, Andrew was willing to give himself a chance. After meeting Elisa a few times, he changed his mind about that girl and spent a long time with her. It¡¯s hard to guarantee that he won¡¯t fall in love. But Elisa had her own heart, and Andrew didn¡¯t want to ept Mrs. Stone¡¯s matchmaking. Even though Elisa and Remy were not engaged or married yet, he could compete fairly with Remy, but he didn¡¯t want to. His advantage was that he was a native of Wiltspoon. Even if he won and Elisa married him, would they really be happy? He also couldn¡¯t ept that his wife had another man in her heart. So staying out of the matter was better for him. Zachary said to him: ¡°This is the trouble with being single. If you fell in love earlier, got married, and had children, you wouldn¡¯t have such troubles. My uncle doesn¡¯t have to worry about your life. If you stay single like this again and go down, my uncle will definitely ask my grandma for help. You know who my grandma is; none of us brothers can find out the palm of my grandma, let alone you.¡± Andrew: ¡°¡­ How can I get married and have children if I didn¡¯t meet the right person at the right time?¡± Zachary choked, unable to refute. Chapter 1825 Chapter 1825 Chapter 1825 ¡°I¡¯m going to talk to Julian right now.¡± Andrew got up and said goodbye. Zachary: ¡°So anxious? Julian may not be at home, you can ask Josh before going to the Bucham¡¯s house, so as not to be in vain.¡± Andrew hummed when he thought of Julian¡¯s sudden appearance. He said: ¡°I don¡¯t want to be in a hurry, but I¡¯m really afraid of Mrs. Stone¡¯s matchmaking. When she plots people, she always hides it without a trace. She usually only reacts when she jumps into her pit. When she reacts, she wants to climb up. It¡¯s a bit difficult to get out of the hole she dug.¡± Zachary smiled: ¡°Being able to be counted against by your aunt shows that you are very good. Everyone in Wiltspoon knows how much their family loves Elisa but their family still doesn¡¯t like it.¡± Andrew: ¡°Brother, are you praising me, or are you gloating?¡± Zachary: ¡°Both.¡± Andrew turned ck and said, ¡°I¡¯ll go to Josh to ask, Because of Mrs. Stone¡¯s matchmaking, I can¡¯t work with peace of mind recently. I have to find Clive to make up for this loss. I have a project recently and I want to ask Clive to take over and earn some money from him. There is a good project.¡± Zachary: ¡°Remember to call your brother, and I promise to invest heavily, cooperate, and win-win.¡± Andrew: ¡°Does that matter?¡± Andrew smiled, and continued to walk outside without stopping. Zachary got up, but instead of sending Andrew out, he walked around the office, and finally swayed to the window, looking at the blue sky and white clouds outside the window, he took out his mobile phone and called Serenity. Serenity quickly answered his call. C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Zachary: ¡°Honey, are you awake?¡± Serenity smiled and said, ¡°Not yet, I answered your call in my dream.¡± ¡°Have you eaten yet?¡± Zacharyughed and asked her with concern, ¡°You must drink that cup of soup to nourish your body.¡± Serenity: ¡°Drink it. Husband, did I get trickedst night? I don¡¯t remember anything after drinking. I woke up today feeling sore back, and I was dreaming all nightst night, dreaming that we were turning upside down.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes were full of smiles, ¡°I thought you had no impression at all. Wife, I-I acted as an antidote for you once, and you have to thank me well.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­you plotted against me!¡± She hadn¡¯t scolded anyone for a long time, and she knew who it was¡­ She was plotting against her, and she promised to beat him all over the ce, and then treat him in the same way as others. Zachary suppressed his smile and said, ¡°I¡¯ll hand it over to Josh, who quickly found out that it was an old pervert who wanted to plot against a young subordinate, so he asked the waiter to deliver the ss of wine to his subordinate. In the end, you asked for those two sses of wine on the way. What a coincidence, the ss of wine I drank was fine, and the ss of wine you drank was drugged.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­ Is there any Beat up that old pervert?¡± Even if she was unlucky enough to drink that ss of fortified wine, that old pervert should still be beaten up for being so scheming at the banquet. ¡°Wife, we are all gentlemen. A gentleman does not move his mouth, and there is no need to do it. I warned the old pervert and scared him enough. His subordinates knew the truth, so they pped him on the spot and resigned, and his reputation in the circle has also been ruined.¡± Chapter 1826 Chapter 1826 Zachary¡¯s character, if he didn¡¯t do anything on the surface, he would make Grandmain in secret. As if guessing what Serenity was thinking, Zachary added: ¡°Although he wasn¡¯t targeting you, I won¡¯t let him go lightly for such a shameless old pervert. With your husband by your side, you have nothing to worry about.¡± ¡°I thought Ms. Dawson was behind the scenes, she called me just now, and told me bluntly that she likes you and fell in love with you at first sight. Zachary, you have a lot of love, Whether it¡¯s before or after marriage, there is no shortage of suitors, and your suitors are all young and beautiful.¡± At the end, Serenity¡¯s words were full of sourness. Hearing the sourness in her words, Zachary asked her: ¡°Are you jealous?¡± Serenityughed, ¡°I am a little jealous, but I can deal with rivals in love, and there are many rivals in love, which also means that my man is excellent, and it means that I am lucky. He is the man everyone wants to C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. marry, and I am blessed.¡± She was also blessed by nature, marrying such an excellent man as Zachary, as long as he was not so stingy and alwaysins that she ignores him, it would be even better. Originally, she was going on a business trip today, but in the current situation, she had to push and go on a business trip tomorrow. Serenity: ¡°You¡¯re busy, I¡¯m going to deal with some private matters.¡± ¡°What private matters?¡± Zachary immediately asked, ¡°Do you want to meet Shawn? You haven¡¯t seen each other for a long time, do you have a lot to say? Where are you meeting? I¡¯ll go there now. I will apany you wherever you want to meet.¡± Zachary met Shawn only oncest night, and he was suspicious. He din¡¯t say that she and Shawn didn¡¯t have a past, even if there was a past, they have been married for so long, yet he was still jealous of Shawn all the time. Serenity: ¡°Yes, I want to see Shawn. As long as the name Shawn is mentioned, you will be suspicious. Zachary, you are so unconfident that you are afraid to hear Shawn¡¯s name? I belong to you; my heart belongs to you; you are my only man; I don¡¯t know what you are worried about; I have never loved Shawn; he is my brother in my heart.¡± Serenity got angry, and Zachary hurriedly coaxed her: ¡°Wife, I¡¯m not suspicious. Well, I was thinking too much. I apologize, I¡¯m sorry, don¡¯t be angry.¡± Serenity said angrily, ¡°I¡¯m going to see the owner of vi No. 188. She brought Analia into the mansion. Besides, she also secretly took pictures of us.¡± Zachary frowned. Dare to secretly photograph the husband and wife, She was not small! Zachary: ¡°Honey, when I go back, I¡¯ll apany you to settle ounts with her.¡± Serenity: ¡°No, I¡¯ll take care of things between women, I don¡¯t need you. Maybe I¡¯ll add another love rival. Well, I¡¯ve already numbered your admirers, let¡¯s see how many numbers you can get.¡± Zachary was speechless. As long as Serenity mentioned his admirers, Zachary would be in Serenity. Serenity¡¯s admirer was Shawn. Shawn had let go of his feelings for Serenity long ago, and his admirers came one after another. Serenity didn¡¯t dislike him for causing so many rotten love affairs, and it was good enough for her to solve them; why would he be ashamed to be so jealous? Chapter 1827 Chapter 1827 Seren, thank you for your hard work.¡± Zachary apologized. He was also very helpless. Serenity said it seriously: ¡°Your heart is still with me, so I guard you, but if you have any intention of cheating, I am not willing to guard you anymore. Whoever wants to marry you, I will give way. There are endless rivals in love. Husband ma, I really want to keep it.¡± ¡°Honey, I love you and always will, and I will only ever love you.¡± ¡°Hmph, it depends on your performance, I¡¯m hanging up the phone, so go ahead.¡± Serenity hung up the phone after finishing speaking. After hanging up the phone, Serenity sued Zachary in a rare way. She said to the old lady: ¡°Grandma, your precious grandson always eats jealousy. It used to be like this, and it¡¯s still like this now. I guess it will be the same in the future. I can¡¯t change it.¡± Grandma May said: ¡°I scolded himst night, if heins about you ignoring him in the future, you can tell me, I will let him know what real neglect is.¡± Serenity became interested and asked, ¡°Grandma, what can you do?¡± Grandma May: ¡°You block all his contact information, and then go on a trip with me, and don¡¯te back for ten days and a half months, so that he can taste the real neglect.¡± Serenity: ¡°¡­When he previously blocked me, heter tried to add me back. I told him that if he blocks me again, it will be time for us to part ways.¡± Grandma May: ¡°That¡¯s it, then you can change to a new mobile phone, and don¡¯t let Zack know the number of the new mobile phone. The current mobile phone is at home, and he can¡¯t contact you. Serenity: ¡°But he can find it.¡± Grandma May: ¡°With grandma here, if grandma doesn¡¯t let him check, he won¡¯t be able to find out. You can travel with grandma with peace of mind, how about it? Serenity, do you want to take a long trip with grandma?¡± Belongs to ? n0velDrama.Org. Grandma May tried her best to persuade her granddaughter-inw to apany her on a trip by herself. ¡°I¡¯m leaving for a business trip tomorrow and will be gone for a few days.¡± Grandma May: ¡°Serenity, Grandma will apany you. After you finish the serious business, we will go y again. By the way, bring Sonny; there is a child to be more lively. Seeing that the summer vacation ising to an end, you haven¡¯t taken Sonny out to y. Have you grabbed the tail of the summer vacation and brought Sonny out to see the world and broaden your horizons? It¡¯s better to travel thousands of miles than to read thousands of books. Take the children out for a walk.¡± Serenity was moved, she was too busy and hadn¡¯t rxed for a long time, she asked the olddy: ¡°Grandma, where do you want to travel?¡± Grandma May: ¡°Let¡¯s go to Jensburg. My third grandson, Kevin, is over there. Let¡¯s go there to watch the fun. Last time you said that grandma would not take you with her when she went to Jensburg, but this time, grandma will take you with her.¡± Serenity: ¡°Okay, then let me tell Zachary, when are we going to leave?¡± Seeing the excitement of Kevin, Serenity even put aside the business trip, wishing to leave Jensburg immediately. ¡°You don¡¯t need to tell him. When we go out, just leave him a note. Aren¡¯t you going to deal with private matters? Go and deal with the matter first. In the afternoon, we will set off.¡± Serenityughed, ¡°That way Zachary will catch me.¡± Grandma May: ¡°Didn¡¯t he alwaysin that you ignored him? You care so much about him and he stillins. Let him taste what it¡¯s really like to be ignored. I promise that he won¡¯t dare toin about you again in the future.¡± Grandma May: ¡°I went to Jensburg, and then went to Annenburg. Don¡¯t you like Jane¡¯s pair of twins? Grandma also wants to see the pair of twins. See more, and be blessed by Jane.¡± Maybe Serenity could also have twins in the future. Grandma May didn¡¯t say this, lest Serenity think she was giving birth. ¡°Okay, there are a few children in FC Manor, it¡¯s very lively.¡± Jane gave birth to a pair of twins, and Dr. Carden was about to give birth. The Johnson family was really thriving. Oh, her inw¡¯s family was also prosperous, but it¡¯s a pity that the York family always had no daughters. Only Ben¡¯s generation of Johnson¡¯s family has no daughters, when ites to his children¡¯s generation, he already has a daughter. The cousins below him were not yet married, so it¡¯s hard to say whether they would have more daughters in the future. Chapter 1828 Chapter 1828 Grandma May: ¡°The olddy of the Johnson family is better off than me.¡± The olddy of the Johnson family was old, and her husband was still alive, apanying her, and the house was full of children and grandchildren, all of whom were filial. The olddy was also full of children and grandchildren, but her husband had been away for many years, and she was very lonely in her heart. The man who loved her the most and understood her was gone. If she didn¡¯t find something for herself to do, she would be even more lonely. This was why she loved to toss. Grandma May: ¡°Serenity, didn¡¯t you say you have to deal with one thing? Go ahead, Property ? N?velDrama.Org. grandma will clean up and go outter.¡± Serenity said, before going out with grandma, she needed to deal with the affairs of vi No. 188 good. At the same time, she also called her sister, expressing that she would seize the tail of the summer vacation and take Sonny out to y. Liberty was currently in her new restaurant with Sonny, and when she received a call from Serenity, she readily agreed to let her take Sonny out for a trip. The summer vacation wasing to an end, and Liberty didn¡¯t even take her son out to y because she had no time. Sonny listened to the conversation between his mother and his aunt, and after his mother hung up the phone, he raised his head and asked, ¡°Mom, where is my aunt taking me?¡± Liberty: ¡°Bring you back before the 1st, and school will start on the 1st.¡± Sonny let out a sigh, and then said happily: ¡°What time will my aunt leave?¡± Liberty: ¡°In the afternoon, let¡¯s go home first, and Mom will help you pack some clothes.¡± Sonny nodded happily. Grandma May was an actionist. In the afternoon, she really took Serenity and Sonny out for a trip. Serenity was supposed to go on a business trip to Jensburg, so she left it to Elisa. Elisa also wanted to go out to avoid it. Her mother had always disapproved of her being with Remy, and tried every means to match her and Andrew. She was annoyed, and Andrew was also annoyed, so it was better to go on a business trip to avoid the limelight. Zachary didn¡¯t know about this. At 9:30 in the evening, when Zachary returned home with a gift for his beloved wife, he got out of the car and did not see Serenitying out, but Serenity¡¯s car was at home, which meant she was at home. Chapter 1829 Chapter 1829 Zachary: ¡°Where did she go?¡± Sam: ¡°Eldest young mistress didn¡¯t say anything.¡± Zachary was a little disappointed that he couldn¡¯t see his wife when he returned home. He immediately took out his mobile phone and called Serenity. After talking for a long time, Serenity didn¡¯t answer the phone. After he hung up the phone, he asked Sam: ¡°Who did the eldest young mistress go out with? Was she with Grandma?¡± There was no sound from the TV in the room, and grandma probably wasn¡¯t there either. Sam: ¡°Yes, they also went out with Sonny.¡± C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Zachary said oh, without further questioning, he went into the house with the gift prepared for Serenity. Grandma was an old urchin who couldn¡¯t stay at home honestly, so Serenity probably apany her out for supper, or to blow the night breeze. Sam walked behind Zachary, hesitant to speak. Zachary didn¡¯t notice this. After Zachary entered the room, he put the gift on the coffee table, followed by sitting down on the sofa, and took out his mobile phone to call Serenity again. The call was still connected, but Serenity never answered. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you answer my call?¡± Zachary sent a message instead, asking Serenity: ¡°Honey, what are you doing, why aren¡¯t you answering my call? Did grandma take you to do ¡®bad things¡¯?¡± Listen to his father Said that when his mother first started, his grandma also liked to take his mother out to do ¡°bad things¡±. Later, because her mother¡¯s personality was really not suitable, grandma didn¡¯t like to take his mother out and went crazy. Serenity¡¯s personality was different from his mother¡¯s. She and grandma had the best rtionship. If grandma took her out to go crazy, she would be happy to go crazy with grandma. Serenity did not reply to the message. Zachary muttered: ¡°Could it be that they went to the Cowherd¡¯s shop to open his eyes?¡± His grandma would really do such a thing. Her old man said that the man in the Cowherd¡¯s shop was the most handsome, and that she used to be To find out some news. He had been to the Cowherd¡¯s shop a few times, and there are so many handsome guys there. When he listened to his grandma talking about the past, his grandpa¡¯s face was ck when he listened to it. ¡°No, They¡¯re taking Sonny with them.¡± Thinking of the two of them going out with Sonny, Zachary denied his guess. Chapter 1830 Chapter 1830 Zachary couldn¡¯t believe it: ¡°My grandma and Serenity took Sonny to travel? She didn¡¯t tell me! I called her, but she didn¡¯t answer, and she didn¡¯t reply when she sent a message, she just left her husband at home and went off on her own! Sister, look at Serenity, she doesn¡¯t pay much attention to me anymore. She doesn¡¯t tell me anything about it, usually for work, she often travels on business, and it takes three or five days toe back after a business trip, and she always ignores me. Abandoning me at home, whenever she reveals a word to me, even if she relies on me, she will go out with her.¡± Liberty: ¡°¡­Serenity is too tired recently, go out and rx. She didn¡¯t ignore you.¡± Her brother-inw oftenined to her sister, and whenever the young couple had Property ? N?velDrama.Org. conflicts, Zachary would definitelye to her toin, and she would criticize her sister. Now Serenity said that if the couple had any minor conflicts, she would stop Zachary firmly, not let Zachary go out, nor let him call, for fear that he wouldin to Liberty. In addition toining, Zachary alwaysined that Serenity ignored him and didn¡¯t love him enough, which always made him feel insecure. He said that he wanted to be a pendant, hang on Serenity¡¯s body, and be together all the time. It made Liberty dumbfounded. ¡°Sister, Serenity just abandoned me.¡± Zachary said aggrievedly, ¡°She still doesn¡¯t answer my call or reply to my message.¡± ¡°Well, I¡¯ll call her and ask her to call you back. Serenity may have made a temporary decision, She didn¡¯t tell you in advance for fear of affecting your work, just wait, I¡¯ll call her first.¡± Liberty hung up her brother-inw¡¯s phone and called Serenity instead, but found that Serenity didn¡¯t answer her calls either, so she had to contact Grandma may, but her phone was turned off. Helplessly, Liberty replied to Zachary: ¡°Zachary, Serenity didn¡¯t answer my call, and grandma¡¯s cell phone was turned off.¡± Zachary¡¯s eyes sank, and he understood that it was grandma¡¯s fault, grandma abducted Serenity. ¡°Grandma, my dear grandma!¡± Zacharyughed angrily at his old urchin grandma. ¡°Abducted my wife and didn¡¯t say a word.¡± Zacharyined. Grandma deliberately abducted his wife. Serenity¡¯s mobile phone could get through but didn¡¯t answer. If he guessed correctly, Serenity changed the mobile phone number so that he could not disturb her. They have fun ying. After sitting quietly in the hall for a few minutes, Zachary went upstairs with the gift, and returned to his room. Sure enough, he saw Serenity¡¯s usual mobile phone on the bedside table. There was a note under the phone. Chapter 1831 Chapter 1831 Josh: ¡°Zachary, you are very clear about the virtues of grandma. You should have been prepared for this long ago. You should be d that grandma didn¡¯t kidnap your wife when you were just married, otherwise you will feel even more ufortable.¡± It¡¯s hard to be apart for a while. Zachary: ¡°¡­Now I¡¯m not happy either. When I wake up in the morning, I¡¯m used to seeing my wife, and when I get home at night, she¡¯s there waiting for me. As long as she is there, I can¡¯t wait to get home. She has waited for a very long time. Now she left me to go out to y, and she made up her mind not to let me follow her. She even reced her mobile phone with a new one, which I¡¯m not used to. Josh, come out for a drink or two, I¡¯ll treat you.¡± He made no attempt to discover where Grandma had gone. Since grandma took Serenity out, grandma wouldn¡¯t let him know where they were going, unless Serenity contacted him. Zachary couldn¡¯t understand why he offended grandma, who wanted to punish him like this. ¡°What time is it? It¡¯s not a suitable time to drink, I want to apany my wife, my wife is pregnant, now I don¡¯t smoke or drink.¡± Josh rejected Zachary¡¯s invitation without thinking. Zachary: ¡°¡­I don¡¯t have nearly enough friends, and I ce a high value on friendship.¡± ¡°Friends don¡¯t spend their whole lives with me, but my wife is the person who will. I put my wife first, of course. It¡¯ste, so I won¡¯t talk to you. I¡¯ll go with my wife instead. Good night.¡± Josh smiled and said good night, Jasmine always felt that there was a bit of schadenfreude in his man¡¯s words. After Josh put down his cell phone, Jasmine asked her husband: ¡°Grandma May and Serenity went on a long trip without Zachary knowing about it? Heined to you about grandma abducting Serenity?¡± Josh smiled and said, ¡°That¡¯s right, he doesn¡¯t know where he offended his Grandma, and was punished by her. If Grandma May doesn¡¯t like other people, don¡¯t offend them. My patriarch treats Grandma May with respect.¡± ¡°Grandma May hasn¡¯t bubbling for a long time. Didn¡¯t she say that she is busy choosing grandsons for other grandchildren? Logically speaking, Zachary can¡¯t offend his grandma, and grandma loves him the most.¡± Josh thought for a while andguessed. He said: ¡°Maybe Zachary is too domineering. Grandma May will punish him and let him taste what is called real neglect, lest he alwaysin that Serenity ignores him, and he often goes to Serenity¡¯s sister to comin.¡± Jasmine smiled and said: ¡°Yes. Serenity said that he has never seen a man who loves to go back to his natal family toin so much. As long as Serenity bullies him, he will go to Sister Liberty toin. Serenity said that now There was a conflict between the couple, and she wanted to confiscate his mobile phone, and then put a chair at the door, where she sat and guarded, preventing Zachary from going out and going back to his mother¡¯s house toin.¡± Joshughed until his stomach ached. He smiled and said a few words for his friend: ¡°Don¡¯t me Zachary, Grandma May taught him everything, except that she didn¡¯t teach him how to love someone. It¡¯s normal to have some shorings when trying to love someone, he just loves Serenity too much.¡± ¡°He, who is used to being domineering and used to being the center of others is the same in love, and I hope that the woman he loves will be full of him. If he turns around C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. and can¡¯t see, he will look for people everywhere. He will onlyin if she ignores him.¡± Chapter 1832 Chapter 1832 Jasmine said: ¡°He didn¡¯t justin now, heined for a while, Serenity said that she has no one who has written a love letter, in order to coax her husband, she had to rack her brains to write a love letter to her husband.¡± Zachary, a domineering man, was easy to change, but his nature was difficult to change. It was predicted that he would be gray-haired and a grandfather or greatgrandfather in the future. He would be endowed with such virtue. As long as Serenity was willing to tolerate him, it would be fine. Oneint, one coaxing husband, repeating the cycle, might be for the fun of the couple; outsiders just listened to it and didn¡¯t need to intervene. Josh looked at her and said enviously: ¡°Zachary also received the love letter from his wife, but I haven¡¯t received it. Jasmine, why don¡¯t you write me a love letter and let me try to receive it?¡± Jasmine: ¡°What is it like to write a love letter from his wife?¡± Josh: ¡°I think Zachary is very happy sometimes, and his cold face can¡¯t hide the joy, as long as he is not blind, he can see it. I guess, it must be because he received a letter from his wife. A love letter for him.¡± Jasmine didn¡¯t refuse or agree, but just said: ¡°I have never written a love letter before. I don¡¯t know how to do it, so I look it up on Google and it seems I don¡¯t like, so don¡¯t copy it. I¡¯m racking my brain to write a love letter for you. It¡¯s very hard. I can¡¯t sleep if I can¡¯t write it, I can¡¯t eat if I can¡¯t write it, and I¡¯m thinking about how to write all day and night.¡± ¡°No, you don¡¯t need to write, I¡¯ll do it for you. Wife, don¡¯t write anymore. I¡¯ll write for you as well.¡± As soon as Jasmine said that she could not write love letters and had no experience, Josh was happy, which meant that he really wrote love letters, and Jasmine was the first person to receive love letter. N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content. But when Josh heard her say that she couldn¡¯t write because she kept thinking about it, couldn¡¯t eat, couldn¡¯t sleep, and thought about it all day and night, he was upset. She was now the most important person in their family¡¯s history. If she couldn¡¯t eat or sleep because of writing a love letter, he would me himself and feel sorry for her, and the elders in his family would chase after him with big knives. His parents could no longer see him as their son because they only saw Jasmine as their daughter-inw. Josh: ¡°Don¡¯t you really need to write? I also want to try what it¡¯s like to write a love letter to the person I love.¡± Jasmine said: ¡°Tonight I¡¯ll think about how to write. I¡¯ve read a lot of love stories. I don¡¯t know how to be original, so I¡¯ll put together the love words that the heroine said to the hero in the stories and make a summary; I should be able to write a few thousand word love letter. I¡¯ll go get the paper, bring the pen, and start writing right away.¡± Jasmine made a gesture to get out of bed to get the paper and pen. Josh hugged her tightly and refused to let her get out of bed. He grinned and said: ¡°I told you not to worry about it, honey, and let¡¯s go to bed early. All you need to do is eat well, get enough rest, and live each day to the fullest.¡± ¡°However, while Zachary has already received Serenity¡¯s love letter, you haven¡¯t yet received mine.¡± ¡°We are now so content because we don¡¯t need to copy them in anything; they are them, and we are us. Ah, I¡¯m so happy. For me, A good-night kiss is worth ten love letters.¡± Jasmine just gave up. She said: ¡°Then don¡¯t say in front of me that you want to receive the love letter I wrote. I love you so much, but I can¡¯t let you be wronged. Zachary has some, and I want you to have them too.¡± Chapter 1833 Chapter 1833 Josh nodded repeatedly and said: ¡°I won¡¯t talk about it, I won¡¯tpare with him, in fact, I am much happier than him. ¡° He touched Jasmine¡¯s still t belly. Zachary had been married for so long and couldn¡¯t be a father, he had already be a father, and he and Jasmine had been in a smooth rtionship, much better than Zachary and his wife. Well, he was content! Jasmine put her hand on the back of his hand, then took his big hand away, and said, ¡°Don¡¯t say such things to Zachary.¡± C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Josh: ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything.¡± Jasmine: ¡°You know what you want to say with this action. Serenity didn¡¯t say anything anymore, but she was still worried that she would not be able to conceive, and I often saw her searching for infertility problems on the Inte.¡± Josh said, ¡°I won¡¯t say anything, you can persuade Serenity, don¡¯t worry, sometimes the more pressure you have, the less you can get what you want.¡± Jasmine: ¡°Understood, I don¡¯t dare to mention the child in front of her but the couple are so loving, why there is no progress?¡± She and Josh were pregnant during the honeymoon period. ¡°They will have children, don¡¯t think too much, go to sleep.¡± Joshforted his beloved wife, then dimmed the bedsidemp, turned sideways, and fell asleep with his beloved wife in his arms. Jasmine was now a twin, she fell asleep very quickly, within a few minutes, she fell asleep and slept soundly. Looking at his beloved wife who fell asleep so quickly, Josh¡¯s heart softened, and he moved to her forehead, kissed her lightly, and said softly and enviously: ¡°My wife, I really envy you, you can fall asleep in a few minutes.¡± He always had to toss and turn to fall asleep. At the same time, the Dawson Family. As soon as Analia came out of the bathroom, she heard her cell phone ringing. There was a new message. The mobile phone was thrown on the bed by her, she walked over quickly, sat down on the edge of the bed, picked up the mobile phone and checked the information. It was an unfamiliar mobile phone number that sent her the message. Chapter 1834 Chapter 1834 .When Analia entered the Regent Residences, she insisted that she didn¡¯t know Analia¡¯s purpose, and thought that she was a rtive of Zachary¡¯s family, and she was just doing a favor out of kindness. Acting like she didn¡¯t know that she caused trouble, she assured Serenity that she would not meddle in her own business in the future. Serenity believed her words on the surface, and when she came back, she told Sam to arrange someone to watch over this news. She felt that this news was not just for breaking the news. She caught the jealousy in the eyes of the other party, and couldn¡¯t help smiling when she mentioned Zachary. If she hadn¡¯t guessed, this news was her 2 No. Rival. Zachary was like a ma, not only attracting unmarried girls, but even divorced young women staring at him, treating him like a piece of fat, wishing to eat him in one bite. Analia remembered the ordinary-looking young woman with a hot body, and said, ¡°It¡¯s you, thank you, Sister. Sister, how did you know that Serenity was away? Where did she go?¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. ¡°My name is Esme. I am also a staying Regent Residences, and I am very concerned about the movements of Young Master York and his wife. After all, it is my honor to live in the samemunity as Young Master York, so I couldn¡¯t help but pay attention.¡± Analia remained silent. Esme continued: ¡°Today at noon, Serenity came to ask me to settle ounts and scolded me so badly. It seems that she is not that confident, maybe the rtionship between their husband and wife is not as good as the outside world imagined.¡± Analia said: ¡°I don¡¯t know this very well, I fell in love with Young Master York at first sight, but I only met Young Master York once, and I don¡¯t know Serenity well. ¡° After a pause, Analia continued: ¡°Serenity hasn¡¯t been pregnant for so long, have you heard the rumors that she can¡¯t conceive? In a wealthy family, if you can¡¯t conceive, no matter how good the rtionship between husband and wife is, it won¡¯t be able to withstand the reality. The family¡¯s hundreds of billions of property needs someone to inherit it, and if Serenity can¡¯t have children, she will be divorced sooner orter and kicked out of the York family. Let¡¯s not talk about wealthy families, it¡¯s an ordinary family. If a woman can¡¯t have children, her husband¡¯s family will also ask for a divorce.¡± Esme said: ¡°Well, we don¡¯t know if Serenity will be able to give birth, but if the couple are as loving as the rumors say, Serenity must have been pregnant long ago. That¡¯s right, the inws will definitely not want a woman who can¡¯t have children. Ms. Dawson, you fell in love with Young Master york at first sight. Serenity is worthy of him in every way. If you can conceive hs child, then you can rece Serenity.¡± After a moment of silence, Analia asked Esme: ¡°Miss Esme, why do you want to help me?¡± ¡°I¡¯m not helping you, I¡¯m using you to help me out. When Serenity came to settle ounts with me, she scolded me so hard that she didn¡¯t treat me like a human being. I swallowed. I don¡¯t hold back and helping you get the position is to avenge Serenity for me.¡± Analia didn¡¯t believe what Esme said, she had only met Serenity once, and it could be seen that Serenity was a well-bred person. She will not yell at Esme. But Esme couldn¡¯t see Serenity¡¯s well-being, Analia believed it. She didn¡¯t expose Esme¡¯s lies, and let Esme nder Serenity. She said, ¡°Miss Esme, thank you for helping me this way. It¡¯ste. I¡¯ll rest first. If there is a chance, I will treat you to dinner.¡± After speaking, Analia hung up the phone. It¡¯s good to have Esme to help her keep an eye on Zachary and his wife¡¯s every move. When Serenity traveled far away, only Zachary was at home, but Analia dared not and could not seize this opportunity to get close to Zachary. Zachary always brought a group of bodyguards with him, mainly to prevent his admirers from approaching him. However, if they knew where Serenity had gone and created an affair for Serenity, it would also be able to destroy the rtionship between the couple. Thinking of this, Analia sent a message to Esme, asking if she knew where Serenity had gone. Esme replied to her: [I don¡¯t know.] Analia: ¡­.¡­¡­ Chapter 1835 Chapter 1835 When Zachary woke up, he didn¡¯t even open his eyes, he turned sideways habitually, stretched out his long arms, and failed to hug Serenity, he suddenly opened his eyes, there was nothing around him, and there was no soft figure of Serenity. After being stunned for a while, Zachary remembered that his grandma abducted his beloved wife, and the two of them took Sonny to travel, and abandoned him at home cruelly, which made him unable to sleep all night, and finally hugged Serenity¡¯s pillow, and only then managed to fall asleep by treating the pillow as Serenity. He took his phone to check the time, it was already past eight o¡¯clock in the morning. In the past, he would get up at six o¡¯clock in the morning for morning jogs. s, his wife was not around, so he couldn¡¯t even get up. Look at the date, today happens to be Saturday! He was so busy that he ignored the date. It felt like it was only Monday, and now it Belongs to ? n0velDrama.Org. was Saturday again. A week went by so fast. Not going to work on Saturday, Zachary wanted to continue dreaming about Serenity, because in the dream, there were only him and Serenity. However, his stomach sang empty city tricks, which made him unable to fall asleep again. He had to get up. There were no missed calls on the phone, and there were a lot of unread messages on WhatsApp. He clicked on it to see, except for the messages in the work group, it was someone asking him to go out on weekends. He checked all of them, but there was no message from Serenity. ¡°Serenity!¡± Zachary gritted his teeth, he hadn¡¯t called her by her first name for a long time. ¡°You are so cruel that you didn¡¯t even send me a message!¡± He couldn¡¯t see the message from Serenity, so he clicked on her circle of friends, but didn¡¯t see any new updates, and then he remembered that she had even changed her mobile phone, and even Liberty didn¡¯t know the new mobile phone number. Zachary who was ¡°abandoned¡± at home by his wife took some time to change his clothes and wash up, and then went downstairs with that charming handsome face. As soon as he got down to the first floor, a fat dog shook its chubby body and ran towards him. Zachary didn¡¯t like furry animals the most. In order to make Serenity happy, he asked a friend to help him buy a pet dog and two pet cats for Serenity to keep. Later, the couple were too busy, and the pets were taken away. Leave it to Mrs. Lane to look after her. Seeing that the fat dog was about to pounce, Zachary instinctively raised his foot and kicked it away. ¡°Master, that¡¯s Grandma¡¯s pet dog.¡± Mrs. Lane yelled. Zachary¡¯s foot almost kicked the pet dog. Hearing Mrs. Lane¡¯s cry, he withdrew his strength, lowered his foot, and spared the fat dog. Mrs. Lane came quickly, and quickly took the pet dog by the rope, ¡°I just went to the bathroom, and you ran in.¡± Mrs. Lane wanted to take the pet dog out, but the fat dog refused to go out, always wanting to rub Zachary Chapter 1836 Chapter 1836 Sam: ¡°Young Master, breakfast is ready.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t speak, but he was walking towards the dining room. When he entered dining room, he saw that the breakfast prepared for him by the kitchen was his usual favorite, but there was something missing on the dining table. Being alone made him very ufortable and had no appetite. After sitting down, he didn¡¯t want to eat without taking two bites. He got up and went straight outside. Sam nced at the dining table, then followed Zachary, and asked with concern as he walked: ¡°Master, is it because you have a bad appetite, or they don¡¯t cook well?¡± Zachary: ¡°My wife is not at home.¡± Belongs to ? n0velDrama.Org. Sam: ¡°¡­¡± Sam: ¡°Young master, where are you going?¡± Zachary didn¡¯t answer. A few minutester, he drove out alone without letting the bodyguards follow him, but Sam still let Jim and another bodyguard drive the car and follow secretly. Jim was driving, and he followed Zachary¡¯s car unhurriedly while driving, and said to the colleague in the passenger seat: ¡°Recently, let¡¯s be a little nervous, don¡¯t make mistakes, and don¡¯t be in the big car when you are fine. Shaking in front of the young master.¡± The colleague said: ¡°Anyone who wants to shake in front of the young master is looking for death. When the young mistress is at home, so we don¡¯t have to worry about it. The sky falls, and the young mistress can support it with one hand. Now the young mistress is not at home. I can¡¯t wait to be invisible and hide far away.¡± ¡°The young master is used to being apanied by the young mistress, and the old lady took the young mistress on a long trip without saying hello. The young master has nowhere to vent his anger.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know where the young master is going.¡± Jim Said: ¡°Young master must haveined to Ms. Liberty.¡± Colleague: ¡°¡­¡± Zachary didn¡¯t go toin, but he did go to All You Can Eat. Liberty happened to be serving food at the time. When Liberty saw her brother-inw approaching, she and asked, ¡°Why are you free?¡± ¡°Sister, I don¡¯t go to work today, Saturday. I came and see if sister needs help here.¡± Liberty: ¡°It¡¯s six, time flies so fast. I don¡¯t need any help here.¡± Liberty seldom cooked breakfast for the guests herself, leaving it to the two small shareholders. There were not many customers in the store, after all, it was past the time for breakfast. Chapter 1837 Chapter 1837 Zachary said this several times. There was no other way but tofort her brother-inw like this. When her younger sister went on a long trip, her brother-inw looked like he couldn¡¯t make it through, which made Liberty a little bit dumbfounded, but she also knew that the couple had such a good rtionship, and Zachary was used to having a wife to apany him. The young couple have a good rtionship, and Liberty would only be happy for her younger sister. ¡°Why don¡¯t you sister change it for you?¡± Liberty thought about whether to cook a bowl of wanton for her brother-inw. Zachary shook his head and said: ¡°No need, it¡¯s not that my sister¡¯s cooking is not delicious, it¡¯s that I have no appetite. When I think of Serenity ruthlessly abandoning me and going on a trip with grandma, she doesn¡¯t even let me know that her mobile phone has a new number, I feel very ufortable. Sister, do you think I have dark circles? I can¡¯t sleep well either.¡± Liberty: ¡°¡­¡± ¡°Sister, tell me, did I do something wrong?¡± Zachary always felt that he had done something wrong to be punished by his grandma. Otherwise, grandma wouldn¡¯t have persuaded Serenity to run around with her. Grandma knew very well that he had a strong desire to monopolize Serenity, and she wished she could stick to Serenity¡¯s side twenty-four hours a day. ¡°I saw it, but I didn¡¯t realize that you were wrong. If I couldn¡¯t see it, I don¡¯t know.¡± Zachary sighed, ¡°My grandma is like this. She shoots suddenly and likes to kill people. She is caught off guard and can¡¯t figure it out.¡± Where was he wrong? Liberty said: ¡°Maybe Grandma just wants to go out and have fun and let Serenity apany her. Zachary, don¡¯t think too much.¡± Zachary didn¡¯t speak. Liberty didn¡¯t understand Grandma May. Zachary was brought up by his grandma, Grandma and grandson had the best rtionship, and Liberty knew best what kind of person grandma was. Grandma must be messing with him. Now, Zachary only hoped that when his wife was ying crazy with grandma, she would still remember him as her husband. ¡°Ring ring ring¡­¡± Liberty¡¯s cell phone rang suddenly. She took out her mobile phone and saw that it was an unfamiliar mobile phone number, and immediately said to Zachary: ¡°Zachary, it may be that Serenity called me, it is an unfamiliar mobile phone number.¡± Zachary: ¡°Sister, answer the phone quickly and see if it¡¯s Serenity.¡± Liberty hummed, and she answered the phone. ¡°Mom.¡± Sonny¡¯s immature voice came over. Libertyughed immediately, ¡°Sonny, do you miss mom? Why are you calling mom now? Mom misses you.¡± ¡°Call Mom.¡± Sonny said this with a guilty conscience. He forgot to call his mother because he had too much fun, and now he remembered, so he quickly borrowed the third uncle¡¯s mobile phone and called his mother.C0pyright ? 2024 N?v)(elDrama.Org. Chapter 1838 Chapter 1838 ¡°Are you at your third uncle¡¯s ce now?¡± Liberty knew that the third uncle in his son¡¯s mouth was Kevin. Sonny hummed, ¡°Now I¡¯m here with third uncle, and I¡¯m going to fly soon. I don¡¯t know where to go. Grandma and auntie have the final say.¡± Sonny ate, drank and yed with his aunt and grandma. Liberty asked him again: ¡°Are you using your aunt¡¯s new mobile phone to call mother?¡± Sonny: ¡°No, it¡¯s third uncle¡¯s, and my aunt¡¯s mobile phone is charging.¡± Liberty said, ¡°Where is your aunt? Let you Auntie, listen to the phone.¡± Sonny: ¡°I¡¯ll go find my auntie, Mom, wait for a while.¡± Sonny went to find Serenity while talking, and Kevin followed him, for fear that he would run too fast and fall down. ¡°Auntie, Mom wants to talk to you.¡± Sonny found Serenity, and immediately handed the phone to Serenity. Serenity answered the phone and called her sister. ¡°Serenity, you use your newly bought mobile phone to send messages or make calls to Zachary, and you are the same. You don¡¯t tell Zachary in advance when you go on a trip. You are not at home. He seems to have lost his soul. On the big weekend, he¡¯s not in the mood to y, hw can¡¯t eat, can¡¯t sleep well, and have dark circles under hs eyes. He¡¯s here with your sister, and I cooked noodles for him, but he can¡¯t eat, and he says he misses you.¡± Liberty first said something to her sister, then walked away a few steps, distanced herself from Zachary, and asked her sister in a low voice: ¡°Serenity, you and Zachary have no conflicts, right? Zachary is always guessing. Did you do something wrong? Grandma vented her anger for you, just treat him like this.¡± Serenity heard that her husband couldn¡¯t eat or sleep well, so she first asked with Property ? N?velDrama.Org. concern: ¡°Is it true that Zachary can¡¯t eat? It¡¯s not the first time for me to travel far, and I often travel on business.¡± Liberty¡± ¡°You usually go on business trips every now and then Within a few days, he can talk to you, send messages, and make videos. This time, if you didn¡¯t tell him, he would be upset. He still doesn¡¯t know your return date, and even if you change your mobile phone and go out, he will feel ufortable. It¡¯s true that he has no appetite, and he can¡¯t eat the noodles his sister made for him. There are also dark circles under his eyes, and it¡¯s because he didn¡¯t sleep well. He still looks like a resentful husband, and you know that he has such a temper and I don¡¯t know how to tell him in advance.¡± Serenity said: ¡°Heined in front of grandma that I was only focused on making money and ignored him, so grandma took me out, let me really ignore him once, let me try to ignore him. The real taste of this, so as not to alwaysin about me in the future. I have neverined that he is busy with work and has no time to apany me. When I am busy, heins about me, always like a resentful husband.¡± Thinking of her husband¡¯s resentful face, Serenity couldn¡¯t helpughing. ¡°For a man falling in love for the first time, it is like that. Zachary is a domineering and self-centered man. For you, he has undergone a lot of change, and you simply leave him alone for two days. To avoid getting hurt, don¡¯t forget to get in touch with him. He does not feel like going to work today.¡± Serenity: ¡°Sister, I got it.¡± ¡°Zachary wants to talk to you now.¡± After Liberty finished speaking, she walked back to Zachary, handed the phone to Zachary, and said to Zachary: ¡°Sonny used Kevin¡¯s cell phone and called, Serenity and the others are now at Kevin¡¯s ce, Zachary: ¡°where is Kevin?¡± Liberty: ¡°He is in Jensburg now.¡± Zachary knew the whereabouts of his beloved wife, and nned to fly to Jensburg